Wace, Piercy, Smith. A Dictionary of Christian Biography and Literature To The End of The Sixth Century, A.D., With An Account of The Principal Sects and Heresies. 1911. (London Edition) .

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 1052

'W siih

m
in
iJi^v^i-i

^ni!
m
'tii*
um
%nm
mm
m:
mm: ffi:
jfUui

mi

ilN!V:0,f

.'JtsMif i
Digitized by the Internet Archive
in 2007 with funding from
IVIicrosoft Corporation

http://www.archive.org/details/dictionaryofchriOOwaceuoft
-/

A DICTIONARY OF
CHRISTIAN BIOGRAPHY
AND LITERATURE
1 .

(2hv,s1-ian t'rtr=P'"V

A DICTIONARY OF
CHRISTIAN BIOGRAPHY
AND LITERATURE
TO THE END OF THE SIXTH CENTURY A.D., WITH
AN ACCOUNT OF THE PRINCIPAL SECTS AND HERESIES

^ V/ EDITED BY

HENRY WAGE, D.D.


DEAN OF CANTERBURY
AND

WILLIAM C. PIERCY, M.A.


DEAN AND CHAPLAIN OF WHITELANDS COLLEGE, S.W.

IN ONE VOLUME

\ y

LONDON
JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET, W.
191
W3

All Rights Reserved.


PREFACE
This volume designed to render to a wider circle, alike of clergy and
is

of laity, the service which, as is generally admitted, has been rendered to

the learned world by The Dictionary of Christian Biography, Literature,


Sects, and Doctrines, published under the editorship of Dr. Wace and the
late Dr, Wm. Smith, about twenty years ago, in four large volumes. That
work covered the whole of the first eight centuries of the Christian era, and
was planned on a very comprehensive scale. It aimed at giving an account,
not merely of names of importance, but of all names, however small, con-
cerned in the Christian literature of those eight centuries and to illustrate its
;

extent and minuteness, it may be enough to mention that no fewer than 596
Johns are recorded in due order in its columns. The surviving Editor may
be pardoned for expressing his satisfaction that the work is now recognized,
abroad as well as at home, as a valuable work of reference, being constantly
quoted alike in the great Protestant Cyclopaedia of Herzog, in its third edition
now happily complete, and in the Patrology of the learned Roman Catholic
Professor at Munich, Dr. Bardenhewer. To the generous band of great
English scholars to whose unstinted labours the chief excellences of that
work are due, and too many of whom have now passed away, it is, or it would
have been, a welcome satisfaction to find it described in the Patrology of
that scholar as "very useful, relatively complete and generally reliable." *
But that work was mainly adapted to the use of men of learning, and
was unsuited, both by its size and expense, and by the very wideness of
itsrange, for the use of ordinary readers, or even for the clergy in general.
In the first place, the last two centuries of the period which it covered,
although of immense interest in the history of the Church, as including
the origins of the Teutonic civilization of Europe, have not an equal
interest with the first six as exhibiting primitive Christianity in its purer
forms. With the one important exception of John of Damascus, the
Fathers of the Church, so called, alike in East and West, fall within the
first six centuries, and in the West the series is closed by St. Gregory
the Great, who died in the year 604. English divines accordingly, since the
days of Bp. Jewel, have, like Bp. Cosin, appealed to the first six centuries
of the Church as exhibiting, in doctrine as well as in practice, subject to
Holy Scripture, the standards of primitive Christianity. Those six centuries,
consequently, have a special interest for all Christian students, and part-
Edition of 1908, published in English at Freiburg im Breisgau, and at St. Louis, Mo.,
*
U.S.A., translated from the second German edition by Dr. T.
J. Shahan, Professor of
Church History in the Catholic University of America, p. 11.
V
.

vi PREFACE
icularly for those of our own Church, and deserve accordingly some special
treatment. Itwas thought, therefore, that a Dictionary of Christian
Biography which confined itself to this formative and authoritative period
of the Church's history would be of special interest and service, not only
to the clergy, but also to the Christian laity and to students for Holy Orders.
But the limitation of such a work to this period at once disembarrassed
our pages of the mass of Teutonic, and sometimes almost pagan, names
with which, after the settlement of the barbarians in Europe, we were over-
whelmed ;and thus of itself rendered it possible to bring the work into
much narrower compass. Moreover, a mass of insignificant names, which the
principles of scholarly completeness obliged us to introduce into the larger
Dictionary, were not needed for the wider circle now in contemplation.
They were useful and necessary for purposes of learned reference, but they
cast no light on the course and meaning of Church history for ordinary
readers. We have had to exercise a discretion (which may sometimes seem
to have been arbitrary) in selecting, for instance, from the 596 Johns just
mentioned those which were the most valuable for such readers as we had
in view ; and for the manner in which we have exercised that discretion
we must trust ourselves to the indulgent judgment of our readers. The
publisher gave us generous limits ; but it seemed to him and to ourselves
indispensable for the general usefulness of the Dictionary that it should be
restricted to one volume ; and we were thus, with respect to the minor
names, obliged to omit many which, though of some interest, seemed to be
such as could be best dispensed with.
By omissions of this nature we have secured an object which will, we
are sure, be felt to be of inestimable value. We have been able to retain,
with no material abbreviation, the admirable articles on the great characters
of early Church history and literature which were contributed, with an
unselfish devotion which can never be sufficiently acknowledged, by the
great scholars who have been the glory of the last generation or two of
English Church scholarship, and some of whom are happily still among us.
To mention only some of the great contributors who have passed away, such
articles as those of Bp. Westcott on Clement of Alexandria and Origen,
Bp. Lightfoot on Eusebius, Archbp. Benson on St. Cyprian, Dr. Bright
on St. Athanasius and kindred subjects, Dr. Salmon on varied subjects
of the first importance, Bp, Stubbs on early English history, and some by
the learned Professor Lipsius of Jena, have a permanent value, as the ap-
preciations of great characters and moments of Church history and literature
by scholars and divines who have never been surpassed, and will hardly be
equalled again, in English sacred learning. We deemed it one of the greatest
services which such a work as this could render that it should make ac-
cessible to the wide circle in question these unique masterpieces of patristic
and historical study. It has therefore been one of our first objects to avoid,
as far as possible, any abbreviation of the body of these articles. We have
occasionally ventured on slight verbal condensation in secondary passages,
and we have omitted some purely technical discussions of textual points
and of editions. But in the main the reader is here placed in possession,
Avithin the compass of a moderate volume, of what will probably be allowed
to be at once the most valuable and the most interesting series of monographs.
PREFACE vii

on the chief characters and incidents of early Church history, ever con-
tributed to a single undertaking by a band of Christian scholars. We
feel itno more than a duty to pay this tribute of gratitude and admira-
tion to the great divines, to whose devotion and learning all that is per-
manently valuable in these pages is due, and we are confident that their
monographs, thus rendered generally available, will prove a permanent
possession of the highest value to English students of Church history.
We must further our cordial gratitude to several
offer the expression of
living scholars, who have contributed new articles of similar importance
to the present volume, in place of some in the original edition which the
lapse of time or other circumstances had rendered less valuable than
the rest. In particular, our warmest thanks are due to Dr. Robertson, the
present Bp. of Exeter, who has substituted for the sketch of St. Augustine
contributed to the original edition by an eminent French scholar, M. de
Pressense, a study of that great Father, similar in its thoroughness to the
other great monographs just mentioned. We are also deeply indebted
to the generosity of Chancellor Lias for fresh studies of such important
subjects as Arius and Monophysitism and a valuable account of the Nes-
;

torian Church has been very kindly contributed by the Rev. W. A. Wigram,
who, as head of the Archbishop of Canterbury's Assyrian Mission, possesses
unique qualifications for dealing with the subject. We have to thank also
the eminent learning of Dr. A. J. Mason for an article on Gaudentius of
Brescia, who was unaccountably omitted from the larger work, and whose
name has of late acquired new interest. The gratitude of the Editors, is
also specially due to Dr. Knowling and Dr. Gee, of Durham University, for
their assistance in some cases in which articles required to be supplemented
or corrected by the most recent learning.
In all cases where the writers of the original articles are still living
they were afforded the opportunity, if they desired it, of revising their
work and bringing it up to date, and of checking the condensations :

though the Editors and not the writers must take the responsibility for
the latter and also, in most cases, for bibliographical additions. The
Editors desire gratefully to record their appreciation of the assistance
thus readily and kindly rendered by most of the original writers who are
still spared to us, and, as an example, we are glad to thank the Rev.

E. B. Birks for his very thorough revision of his article on the Epistle to
Diognetus.
Cross-references are inserted, where needed, on the principle adopted
in Murray's Illustrated Bible Dictionary (to which this
is intended to be


a companion volume in size, appearance, and price) namely, the nam.e
of the article to which a cross-reference is intended is printed in capitals
within brackets, but without the brackets when it occurs in the ordinary
course of the text.
In the headings of articles the numbers in brackets after names which
are common to more than one person are retained as in the large edition,
to facilitate reference to that edition when desired, and also to indicate
that there were other persons of the same name.
It was not consistent with the limits of the work to retain in all cases
the minute bibliography sometimes furnished in the larger edition. But,
VUl PREFACE
on the other hand, an endeavour has been made to give references, at the
end of articles, to recent publications of importance on each subject and
;

in this endeavour the Editors must express their great indebtedness to the
valuable Patrology of Professor Bardenhewer, already referred to, and to
the admirable third edition of Herzog and Hauck's Protestant Cyclopaedia,
and occasionally to the parallel Roman Catholic Cyclopaedia of Wetzer and
Welte, edited by Cardinal Hergenrother. It may be permissible, in referring
to these auxiliary sources, to express a deep satisfaction at the increasing
co-operation, in friendly learning, of Protestant and Roman Catholic scholars,
and to indulge the hope that it is an earnest of the gradual growth of a
better understanding between those two great schools of thought and life.
The Editors cannot conclude without paying a final tribute of honour
and gratitude to the generous and devoted scholar whose accurate labours
were indispensable to the original work, as is acknowledged often in its Pre-
faces, and who rendered invaluable assistance in the first stage of the pre-

paration of the present volume the Rev. Charles Hole, late Lecturer for
many years in Ecclesiastical History in King's College, London. Dr. Wace
hoped to have had the happiness of having his own name associated with-
that of his old teacher, friend, and colleague on the title-page of this volume,
and he laments that death has deprived him of this privilege. He cannot,
however, sufi&ciently express his sense of obligation to his colleague, Mr.
Piercy, for the ability, skill, and generous labour without which the pro-
duction of the work would have been impossible.
LIST OF WRITERS
Initials
A.H.D.A. The Right Hon. A. H. Dyke Acland, LL.D.
Hon. Fellow of Balliol College, Oxford.
M.F.A. The late Rev. M. F. Argles, M.A.
Formerly Principal of St. Stephen's House, Oxford.
C.J.B. Rev. C. J. Ball, M.A.
Lecturer in Assjoriology, Oxford ; Rector of Blechingdon.
J.B— Y. The late Rev. J. Barmby, B.D.
Formerly Principal of Bishop Hatfield's Hall, Durham, and Rector of
Pilkington.
S.A.B. S. A. Bennett, Esq., B.A.
Of Lincoln's Inn.
E.W.B. The late Most Rev. E. W. Benson, D.D.
Formerly Archbishop of Canterbury.
E.B.B. Rev. E. B, Birks, M.A.
Vicar of Kellington formerly Fellow of Trinity College, Cambridge^
;

C.W.B. The Rev. C. W. Boase, M.A.


late
Formerly Fellow of Exeter College, Oxford.
W.B. The late Rev. Canon W. Bright, D.D.
Formerly Regius Professor of Ecclesiastical History, Oxford.
T.R.B. The late Right Hon. T. R. Buchanan, M.A., M.P.
Fellow of All Souls' College, Oxford.
D.B. The late Rev. D. Butler, M.A.
Formerly Rector of Thwing, Yorkshire.
J.G.C. The Lite Rev. J. G. Cazenove, D.D.
Formerly Provost of Cumbrae College, N.B.
M.B.C. Rev. M. B. Cowell, M.A.
Vicar of Ash Bocking.
F.D. F. H. Blackburne Daniel, Esq.
Of Lincoln's Inn.
G.W.D. The Ven. G. W. Daniell, M.A.
Archdeacon of Kingston-on-Thames.
T.W.D. The late Rev. T. W. Davids.
Upton.
L.D. Rev. L. Davidson, M.A.
Rector of Stanton St. John, Oxford.
J.Ll.D. Rev. J. Ll. Davies, D.Litt.
Formerly Fellow of Trinity College, Cambridge.
CD. Rev. C
Deedes, M.A.
Prebendary of Chichester.
W.P.D. The late Rev. W. P. Dickson, D.D.
Formerly Professor of Divinity, Glasgow.
E.S.Ff. The late Rev. E. S. Ffoulkes, M.A.
Formerly Fellow of Jesus College, Oxford, and Vicar of St. Mary's.
A.P.F. The late Right Rev. A. P. Forbes, D.C.L.
Formerly Bishop of Brechin.
W.H.F. The Very Rev. and Hon. W. H. Fremantle, D.D.
Dean of Ripon.
J.M.F. The Rev. J. M. Fuller, M.A.
late
Formerly Fellow of St. John's College, Cambridge.
LIST OF WRITERS
INITIALS
U.S.A.
J-^- """^RlctorTs^Jamet's, Hartford, Connecticut,
Tj r
H-G- Rev. H. Gee, D.D. Durham.
^Master of University College,
The Right Rev. Gore, D.D.
C.
r
^* r
Bishop of Birmingham.
j.Gw. ''^•Rig°"pSes?of„f BivinVty, T.C.D.

^"^ o?Sry ?oSege, O.ford.


l?„'™Sr Fli "v-
M^A^^^^
T.R.H. The Ute^^^R- T^^R^ H.J.COM^ ^_^,^^^

<:«• ^'' aM Lecturer m Ecclesiastical History


JformS;- Recto" oI'Loxtar.
in King's College,London.
D.D.
H H
H.b.H.
<:; Rev. Canon H. Scott Holland,Oxford.
^'=-
^^^.^^^ Professor of Divinity,
TViP late Rev. F. T. a. Hort, D.D.
^- Cambridge.
Formerly Fellow of Emmanuel College,
n The late Rev. D. R. Jones.
^ R •'
T
Oxford.
Rev. Canon R. Knowling D.D.
R T K J.
^•J-^- Professor of Divinity, Durham.
Li.as M.A.
T I T Rev. Chancellor J. J.
J-J-^- Chancellor of Llandaff Cathedral.
T
^- The Right Rev. J. B. Lightfoot, D.D.
Formerly Bishop of Durham.
R-A-L. The lge^R;,yVo7elSr'oFm;inity, University of Jena.

W-L- ^"^ Warden of Keble College.


ird;nd°ProfS-so; of Exegesis, Oxford ;

J.H.L. The lat^ej-- ^5^%^^^" College. Cambridge.


^,S;
a.F.M. The l^t^eJ--^,,5;,^^^^s^t\?g?sU College, Canterbury.

^^''- ^-
^Sc^^ors'tufen't'ofclirist Church. Oxford.

^•^^- ^""^ Cambridge.


^^onnS;-Fdlow of T'riSy- College,
Canon of Canterbury.
A.J.M. R^^-Mttl; o''pli^rSi?bollege, Cambridge, and
W-M. The laj^^f-'p^jfes^-^^^^^ Aberdeen.

The late REV. H.^^^-k-^^^^^^^^^^


^; College. Oxford.

^x^^AT ThP
The late Rev. T. D. C. Morse.
T.D.C.M. Nuneaton.
JfJ^^^^^J* R^^tor of Drayton,
The Right Rev. H. G. C. Moule, D.D.
H r CM
"•^•^*
Bishop of Durham.

J-^-^^- J-
^Fo'S/'F^lo^v o^-Klng's College, Cambridge.
The Right Rev. F. Paget, D.D.
FP
Bishop of Oxford.
late Rev. H. W. Phillott,
M.A.
H.W.P. The
Formerly Rector of Staunton-on-Wye.
r P
W.CP.
\xr Rev. W. C. Piercy, M.A. ^ „ awr
College. S.W.
,

^^"^Dean and Chaplain of Whitelands


D.D.
EH
^•"•*^
P. The late Rev. E. H. Plumptre,
Formerly Dean of Wells
P.O. The late Rev. P. Onslow, B.A.Sapey.
Formerly Rector of Upper
M.A.
J.R. The late Rev. Canon J Raine, Umversity.
.

Formerly Fellow of Durham


LIST OF WRITERS xi
Initials
H.R.R. The Rev. H. R. Reynolds, D.D.
late
Formerly Principal of Cheshunt College.
A.R. The Right Rev. A. Robertson, D.D.
Bishop of Exeter. •
.

G.S. The late Rev. G. Salmon, D.D.


Formerly Regius Professor of Divinity and Provost of Trinity College,
Dublin.
P.S. The Rev. P. Schaff.
late
Bible House,New York.
W.M.S. The Ven. VV. M. Sinclair, D.D.
Formerly Archdeacon of London.
I. G.S. Rev. I. G. Smith, LL.D.
Formerly Fellow of Brasenose College, Oxford.
R.P.S. The late Very Rev. R. P. Smith, D.D.
Formerly Dean of Canterbury.
G.T.S. The late Rev. G. T. Stokes, M.A.
Formerly Professor of Ecclesiastical History, Trinity College, Dublin.
S. The late Right Rev. W. Stubbs, D.D.
Formerly Bishop of Oxford.
E.S.T. The Right Rev. E. S. Talbot, D.D.
Bishop of Winchester.
R.St. J. T. The late Rev. R. St. J. Tyrwhitt.
Formerly Student of Christchurch, Oxford.
E.V. The late Rev. Canon E. Venables.
Formerly Precentor of Lincoln Cathedral.
H.W. The Very Rev. H. Wage, D.D.
Dean of Canterbury.
M.A.W. Mrs. Humprhy Ward.
Stocks House, Tring.
H.W.W. The Ven. H. W. Watkins, D.D.
Hebrew, Durham University, and Archdeacon
Prof, of of Durham.
W. or B.F.W. The Right Rev. B. F. Westcott, D.D.
late
Formerly Bishop of Durham.
W.A.W. Rev. W. A. Wigram, M.A.
Archbishop of Canterbury's Mission to Assyria.
H.A.W. Rev. H. A. Wilson, M.A.
Fellow .of Magdalen College, Oxford.
J.W. The Right Rev. J. Wordsworth, D.D.
Bishop of Salisbury.
E.M.Y. The late Rev. E. M. Young, M.A.
Formerly Headmaster of Sherborne School.

I
i
DICTIONARY OF CHRISTIAN
BIOGRAPHY
ABERCIUS
the anonymous writer against Montanus are
AberciUS CA^epKio?, 'Aow'p/ctos, 'AovepKio?, dedicated. We cannot be sure as to the date of
etc. Lat. Avircius, or Avercius
; on the form
;
these extracts, but there is reason to place them
and origin, see Ramsay, Expositor, ix. (3rd towards the close of the reign of Commodus,
ser.), pp. 268, 394, and Zahn, art. " Aver- 180-192, and the epitaph of Abercius must at
cius," Realencyclopddie jiir protest. Theol. und least have been earUer than 216, the date of
Kirche, Hauck). The Life of the saint, de- the epitaph of Alexander. But the writer of
scribed as bp. of Hierapolis in Phrygia in the the extracts addresses the person to whom he
time of M. Aurelius and L. Verus, as given by dedicates his work as a person of authority,
Symeon Metaphrastes and in the Boliandist although he does not style him a bishop (but
Acta Sanctorum, Oct. 22, is full of worthless see Lightfoot, u.s. p. 483), who had urged
and fantastic tales. But the epitaph which him a very long time ago to write on the
the Acts incorporate, placed, according to the subject. Avircius Marcellus might therefore
story, on the altar brought from Rome by the have well flourished in the reign of M. Aurelius,
demon whom the saiut had driven out of and might have visited Rome at the time men-
the emperor's daughter, is of great value, and tioned in the legend, a.d. 163. Further, in
the discovery of some of the actual fragments the extracts mention is made by the writer
of the inscription may well be called " a of one Zoticus of Otrous, his " fellow-presby-
romance of archaeology." For this redis- ter," and Otrous was in the neighbourhood of
covery our thanks are due to the rich labours this Hieropolis (for the identification, see
of Prof. Ramsay. The fact that Abercius further Lightfoot and Zahn, u.s. Headlam,
;

was described as bp. of Hierapolis at the U.S. ; Ramsay, Expositor, ix. (3rd ser.), p.
time mentioned above had contributed to 394). Against the attempt of Ficker to prove
hesitation as to the genuineness of the epitaph. that the epitaph was heathen, Sitzungsberichte
But Ramsay {Bulletin de correspondance hel- d. Berl. Akad. 1895, pp. 87-112, and that of
lenique, Juillet 1882) pointed out that Hiera- Harnack, Texte und Untersuchungen, xii. 46,
polis had been frequently confounded with p. 21, to class it as partly heathen and partly
Hieropolis ; and he also published in the same Christian, see Zahn, u.s., and further in Neue
journal a metrical and early Christian epitaph Kirchliche Zeilschrift, 1895, pp. 863-886 also ;

of a certain Alexander (a.d. 216), discovered the criticism of Ramsay, quoted by Headlam,
at Hieropolis, and evidently copied from the U.S. Both external and internal evidence are
epitaph of Abercius, as given in his Life. As in favour of a Christian origin, and we have
to the copying, there can be no doubt, for the in this epitaph what Ramsay describes,
third line of the epitaph of Alexander, son of C. R. E. pp. 437 ff., as " a testimony, brief,
Antonius, will not scan, owing to the substi- clear, emphatic, of the truth for which Avir-
tution of his name for that of Abercius (Light- cius had contended —
the one great figure on
the Catholic side produced by the Phrygian
foot, Apost. Fathersi, i. p. 479 ; Headlam in
Authority and Archaeology, pp. 307 ff., 1899). church during this period," a man whose
Ramsay's attention being drawn to the earlier wide experience of men and cities might in
epitaph, he collected various topographical itself have well marked him out as such
notices in the Life of the saint, which pointed a champion. The faithful, i.e. the sacred
to Hieropolis, near Synnada (not HierapoUs writings, the Sacraments of Holy Baptism
on the Maeander), and he further established and Holy Communion, the miraculous birth
the case for the former by finding, in 1883, of our Lord (the most probable reference of
in the bath-room at some hot springs near irapOivos ayinj), His omnipresent and omni-
Hieropolis, a small portion of the epitaph of scient energy, the fellowship of the members
Abercius himself on the fragment of an altar- of the church, not only in Rome but else-
shaped tomb ; the hot springs in their posi- where—all these (together with the mixed
tion near the city exactly correspond with cup, wine and water the prayer for the
;

the position of the hot springs described in departed the symbolic IXBTS, one of its
;

the Life. We have thus fortunately a three- earliest instances) have a place in the picture
fold help in reconstructing the text of the of early Christian usage and belief gained

whole epitaph (i) the text in the Life; (2)
the rediscovered fragments in the stone (3)
from this one epitaph ; however widely Aber-
; cius travelled, to the far East or West, the
the epitaph on the tomb of Alexander. same picture, he assures us, met his gaze.
There is much to be said for the identifica- We thus recover an instructive and enduring
tion of Abercius with the Avircius Marcellus monument of Christian life in the 2nd cent.,
(Eus. H. E. v. 16) to whom the extracts of all the more remarkable because it is pre-
;

ABGAfi ACACIUS
sented to us, not in any systematic form, but by Greg. Naz. (Orat. xxi. 21) " the tongue of
as the natural and simple expression of a the Arians," George of Cappadocia being " the
pure and devout soul. For full literature, see hand." He assisted in consecrating Cyril, a.d.
Zahn, M.S. for the development of the legend
; 351, and in accordance with the 7th Nicene
from the facts mentioned in the epitaph, and Canon claimed a right of priority for the metro-
for the reconstruction of the text by Light- political see of Caesarea over that of Jeru-
foot and Ramsay, see three articles by the salem. This Cyril refused to yield. Acacius^
latter in Expositor, ix. (3rd ser.), also Ram- supported by the Palestinian bishops, deposed
say's Cities and Bishoprics of Phrygia, ii. 722. Cyril on frivolous grounds, and expelled him
In addition to literature above, cf. art. by from Jerusalem, a.d. 358. [Cyril of Jeru-
Lightfoot in Expositor, i. (3rd ser.), pp. 3 ff. ;
salem.] (Soz. iv. 25 ; Theod. ii. 26.)
and Farrar, Lives of the Fathers, i. pp. 10 ff. Acacius attended the council of Antioch,
Prof. V. Bartlet discusses Harnack's hypo- A.D. 341 (Soz. iii. 5), when in the presence of
thesis in the Critical Review, April 1896, and the emperor Constantius " the Golden Basil-
regards it as at present holding the field ;
ica " was dedicated by a band of ninety
though he finds Harnack's elimination of any bishops, and he subscribed the ambiguous
reference to Paul the Apostle in the inscrip- creeds then drawn up from which the term
tion quite unintelligible. Even Schmiedel Homoousion and all mention of " substance "
(Encycl. Bihl. ii. 1778) refers unhesitatingly to were carefully excluded. With other bishops
the inscription as Christian. See further Dr. of the Eusebian party he was deposed at the
Swete's art. /. T. S. July 1907, p. 502, on council of Sardica, a.d. 347. They refused to
Avircius and prayers for the departed. submit to the sentence, and withdrew to
Philippopolis, where they held a council of
The following is a translation of the epitaph ;
their own, deposing their deposers, including
" Citizen of a chosen city I have made this (tomb) in
Pope and Hosius of Cordova (Theod.
my lifetime, that I may have here before the eyes of ii. 26 Julius Socr. ii. 16 Soz. iii. 14 Labb. Conc^
men ((^lavepiu^ v. I. Kaipw) a resting-place for my ; ; ;


body Avircius by name, a disciple of the pure ii. 625-699). According to Jerome (Vir. III.
Shepherd, who on the mountains and plains feedeth 98), his influence with the emperor Constan-
the flocks of His sheep, who hath eyes large and be- tius was considerable enough to nominate
holding all things. For He was my Teacher, teaching Felix (the antipope) to the see of Rome at the
me {&iSaaKioi', so Ramsay, omitted by Zahn) the fall of Liberius, A.d. 357. Acacius took a
faithful writings who sent me to Rome to behold the
King Oao-iArjai', SO Ramsay, but I,ightfoot fiaa-i\r)av, leading place among the intriguing prelates,
;

Zahn, fioLTikri araeprjcrai), and to see the Queen in who succeeded in splitting into two the
golden robes and golden sandals, and there, too, I saw oecumenical council which Constantius had
a people bearing a shining seal (a reference to Bap- proposed to summon, and thus nullifying its
tism). And I saw the plain of Syria and all its cities, authority. While the Western bishops were
even Nisibis, having crossed the Euphrates, and assembling at Rimini, a.d.
359, he and his
everywhere I had fellow-worshippers ((Tui'oft^0t-i5, so
brethren of the East gathered at Seleucia,
Ivightfoot and Ramsay crui'oSi'iTjr, Zahn, referring
;

to Paul). M^ith Paul in my hands 7 followed (i.e. the where he headed a turbulent party, called
writings of Paul, Ramsay but lyightfoot and Di after him Acacians.
;
After the majority had
Rossi apparently with Paul as my comrade
' ' confirmed the semi-Arian creed of Antioch
whilst Zahn conjectures enoxov, or rather en-' 6x<«)»' (" Creed of the Dedication "), Acacius brought
instead of iwoinqi') while Faith everywhere led the forward a Confession (preserved by Athan-
,

way, and everywhere placed before me food, the Fish


asius, de Synod, § 29 Socr. ii. 40 Soz. iv.
from the fountain, mighty, pure, which a spotless ; ;

Virgin grasped (Ramsay refers to the V^irgin Mary, 22) rejecting the terms Homoousion and Ho-
but see also L,ightfoot and Farrar). And this she moiousion " as alien from Scripture," and
{i.e. Faith) gave to the friends to eat continually, anathematizing the term " Anomoeon," but
having excellent wine, giving the mixed cup with distinctly confessing the " likeness " of the
bread. These words, I, Avircius, standing by, bade Son to the Father. This formula the semi-
to be thus written I was in fact in my seventy-
;

second year. On seeing this let every one who thinks


Arian majority rejected, and becoming ex-
with him (i.e. who is also an anti-Montanist, so asperated by the disingenuousness of Acacius,
" likeness of the Son to
Ramsay ; lyightfoot and Farrar simply '
fellow- who interpreted the
Christian ') pray for him {i.e. Avircius). But no one the Father " as " likeness in will alone,"
shall place another in my tomb, but if so, he shall ofxoiov Kara, rrjv ^ovXtjclv fxbvov, and refused
pay 2000 gold pieces to the Romans, and 1000 gold to be judged b^' his own published writings
pieces to my excellent fatherland Hierapolis " (so
Ramsay, vide Expositor, ix. 3rd ser. p. 271, for a (Socr. and Soz. I.e.), they proceeded to de-
justification of this reading). [r.j.k.] pose him and his adherents. Acacius and
the other deposed prelates flew to Con-
Abgar. [Thaddaeus.] stantinople and laid their complaints before
AcaciUS (2), bp. of Caesarea, from a personal the emperor. The adroit Acacius soon
defect known as 6 /j.oi>6(pda\fios, the pupil and gained the ear of the weak Constantius, and
biographer of Eusebius the church historian. finding that the favour he had shown to the
He succeeded his master as bishop, a.d. 340 bold blasphemies of Aetius had to some de-
(Socr. H. E. ii. 4 Soz. H. E. iii. 2).
; He is gree compromised him with his royal patron,
chiefly known to us as the bitter and uncom- he had no scruple in throwing over his former
promising adversary of Cyril of Jerusalem, friend. A new council was speedily called at
and as the leader of an intriguing band of Constantinople, of which Acacius was the
ambitious prelates. The events of his life soul (Philostorg. iv. 12). Mainly through his
show Acacius to have been a man of great intrigues the Council was brought to accept
intellectual ability but unscrupulous. After the Confession of Rimini, by which, in J erome's
the death of Eusebius of Nicomedia, c. 342, strong words, " the whole world groaned and
he became the head of the courtly Arian party, wondered to find itself Arian " {Dial. adv.
and is thought by some to be the person styled Luc. 19). To complete their triumph, he and
ACACIUS ACACIUS 3
Eudoxius of Antioch, then bp. of Con- 9 ;
Labb. Cone. ii. 1072) ;while Flavian him-
stantinople, put forth their whole influence to self, through the exertions of Acacius, received
bring the edicts of the Nicene council, and all letters of communion not only from Rome,
mention of the Homoousion, into disuse and but also from Theophilus of Alexandria and
oblivion (Soz. iv. 26). On his return to the the Egyptian bishops. The whole merit of
East in 361 Acacius and his party consecrated was ascribed by the bishops of the
this success
new bishops to the vacant sees, Meletius East to " their father " Acacius (Socr. vi. 9 ;
being placed in the see of Antioch. When Soz. viii. 3 Theod. v. 23
; Labb. Cone. iii.
;

the imperial throne was filled by the orthodox p. 391 Pallad. p. 39).
; Acacius was one of
Jovian, Acacius with his friends found it con- the most implacable of the enemies of Chry-
venient to change their views, and in 363 sosTOM. He bore part in the infamous
they voluntarily accepted the Nicene Symbol " Synod of the Oak," a.d. 403 took the lead
;

(Socr. iii. 25). On the accession of the Arian in the Synod of 404, after Chrysostom's return
Valens in 364 Acacius once more went over from exile ;and joined in urging Arcadius to
to the more powerful side, making common depose him (Pallad. p. 82). He added acts of
cause with the Arian Eudoxius (Socr. iv. 2). open violence to his urgency with the timid
But he found no favour with the council of emperor, until he had gained his end in the
Macedonian bishops at Lampsacus, and his final expulsion of the saint, June 20, 404.
deposition at Seleucia was confirmed. Accord- Nor was his hostility even now satiated.
ing to Baronius, he died a.d. 366. Acacius sent to Rome one Patronus, with
Acacius enriched with parchments the letters accusing Chrysostom of being the
library at Caesarea founded by Pamphilus author of the conflagration of his own church.
(Hieron. Ep. ad. Marcellam, 141). He wrote The pope treated the accusation with deserved
on Ecclesiastes, six books of (TVfj.ij.iKTa contempt, and Acacius was a second time sus-
i^qTi'i/jLara and other treatises
; a considerable pended from communion with Rome (Pallad.
fragment of his 'AfTiXoyia against Marcellus p. 35), which he did not regain till 414, and
of Ancyra is preserved by Epiphanius (Haer. then chiefly through Alexander of Antioch.
72, 6-9). His Life of Eusebius Pamphih has The letter sent to the pope by Acacius, with
unhappily perished. See Fabricius, B. G. those of Alexander, was received with haughty
vii. p. 336, ix. pp. 254, 256 (ed. Harless) condescension, and an answer was returned re-
;

Tillemont, Mem. eccl. vi. (passim) ; Rivington admitting the aged prelate on his complying
(Luke), Dublin Review, 1894, i. 358-380; with certain conditions (Cone. ii. 1266-8). His
Hefele, Konz. Gesch. Bd. i. [e.v.] communion with Alexander was fuUv restored,
Acacius (4), bp. of Beroea, in Syria, c. a.d. and we find the two prelates uniting in ordain-
379-436. He was apparently a Syrian by ing Diogenes, a " bigamus " (Theod. Ep. no).
birth, and in his early youth adopted the Acacius's enmity to Chrysostom's memory
ascetic Ufe in the monastery of Gindarus near seems however to have been unquenched ;

Antioch, then governed by Asterius (Theod. and on the succession of Theodotus of Antioch,
Vit. Patr. c. 2). Not much is known with a.d. 421, he took the opportunity of writing
certainty of this period of his life. He ap- to Atticus of Constantinople to apologize for
pears, however, to have been prominent as a the new bishop's having, in defiance of his
champion of the orthodox faith against the better judgment, yielded to popular clamour
Arians, from whom he suffered (Baluz. Nov. and placed Chrysostom's name on the diptychs
Collect. Cone. p. 746), and it is specially men- (Theod. v. 34 Niceph. xiv. 26, 27). On the
;

tioned that he did great service in bringing rise of the Nestorian controversy Acacius
the hermit Julianus Sabbas from his retire- endeavoured to act the part of a peacemaker,
ment to Antioch to confront this party, who for which his age of more than 100 years, and
had falsely claimed his support (Theod. Vit. the popular reverence which had gained for
Patr. 2, H. E. iv. 24). We find him in Rome, him the title of "the father and master of all
probably as a deputy from the churches of bishops," well qualified him. With the view
Syria when the Apollinarian heresy was treated of healing the breach between Cyril of Alex-
before pope Damasus (Baluz. Cone. 763). andria and Nestorius, he wrote a pacificatory
After the return of Eusebius of Samosata from reply to a violent letter of the former (a.d.
exile, A.D. 378, Acacius was consecrated to the 430). In the general council which followed
see of Beroea (the modern Aleppo) by that at Ephesus, a.d. 431, he entrusted his proxy
prelate (Theod. H. E. v. 4). As bishop he to Paul of Emesa. The influence of the aged
did not relax the strictness of his asceticism, Acacius was powerful at court. Theodosius
and like Ambrose (August. Confess, vi. 3), wrote to him in most reverential terms be-
throwing the doors of his house open to every seeching him to give his endeavours and
comer, he invited all the world to witness the prayers for the restoration of unity to the
purity and simplicity of his life (Soz. H. E. distracted church. Acacius was also ap-
vii. 28). He attended the council of Con- pealed to by Pope Sixtus HL for the same
stantinople in 381 (Theod. v. 8). The same object (Baluz. Cone. pp. 721, 754, 757 Labb. ;

year, on the death of Meletius, taking a pro- Cone. iii. 1087).


minent part in the consecration of Flavian to Acacius disapproved of Cyril's anathemas
the bishopric of Antioch [Flavianus], thus of Nestorius, which appeared to him to
perpetuating the Eustathian schism, he in- savour of Apollinarianism but he spent his
;

curred displeasure both in East and West, last days in promoting peace between the
and was cut off from communion with the rival parties, taking part in the synod held at
church of Rome (Soz. vii. 11). The council the emperor's instance in his own city of
of Capua at the close of 391 or 392 received Beroea, a.d. 432, by John of Antioch, and
Acacius again into communion, together with doing all in his power, both by personal in-
the prelates of Flavian's party (Ambros. Ep. fluence and by letters to Cyril and to the
4 ACACIUS ACACIUS
Roman bp. Coelestinus about an
to bring the appointment on the plea of necessity,
agreement. He ultimately succeeded in while he protested against the precedent
establishing friendly communion between (Simplic. Epp. 14, 13). Three years later
John and Cyril. He saw the peace of the (482), on the death of the patriarch of Alex-
church re-established, and died full of days andria, the appointment of his successor gave
and honour, aged, it is said, more than no occasion to a graver dispute. The Mono-
years, a.d. 436. physites chose Petrus Mongus as patriarch,
Three letters are still extant out of the large who had already been conspicuous among
number that he wrote, especially on the them ; on the other side the Catholics put
Nestorian controversy two to Alexander of forward Johannes Talaia. Both aspirants
:

Hierapolis, Baluzius, Nov. Collect. Concil. lay open to grave objections. Mongus was,
c. xli. p. 746, c. Iv. p. 757 and one to Cyril, or at least had been, unorthodox Talaia was
;
;

ih. c. xxii. p. 440; Labbe, Cone. vol. iii. p. 382 bound by a solemn promise to the Emperor
(Cave, Hist. Lit. i. 417 Tillemont, Mem. eccl. not to seek or (as it appears) accept the
;

vol. xiv. Hefele, Konz. Gesch. Bd. ii.). [e.v.]


; patriarchate (Liberat. c. 17 ; Evagr. H. E.
AcaciUS (7), patriarch of Constantinople, iii. 12). Talaia at once sought and obtained
A.D. 471-489. Acacius was originally at the the support of Simplicius, and slighted
head of an orphanage at Constantinople, Acacius. Mongus represented to Acacius
which he administered with conspicuous suc- that he was able, if confirmed in his post, to
cess (Suidas, s.v. 'Akclkios). His abilities at- heal the divisions by which the Alexandrine
tracted the notice of the emperor Leo, over church was rent. Acacius and Zeno readily
whom he obtained great influence by the arts listened to the promises of Mongus, and in
of an accomplished courtier (Suidas, I.e.). On spite of the vehement opposition of Simplicius,
the death of Gennadius (471) he was chosen received the envoys whom he sent to discuss
bp. of Constantinople, and soon found him- the terms of reunion. Shortly afterwards the
self involved in controversies, which lasted Henoticon (An Instrument of Union) was
throughout his patriarchate, and ended in drawn up, in which the creed of Nicaea, as
a schism of thirty- five years' duration be- completed at Constantinople, was affirmed to
tween the churches of the East and West. be the one necessary and final definition of
On the one side he laboured to restore unity faith ; and though an anathema was pro-
to Eastern Christendom, which was distracted nounced against Eutyches, no express judg-
by the varieties of opinion to which the Euty- ment was pronounced upon the doctrine of the
chian debates had given rise and on the other two Natures (Evagr. H. E. iii. 14). Mongus
;

to aggrandize the authority of his see by accepted the Henoticon, and was confirmed in
asserting its independence of Rome, and his see. Talaia retired to Rome (482-483), and
extending its influence over Alexandria and Simplicius wrote again to Acacius, charging
Antioch. In both respects he appears to him in the strongest language to check the
have acted more in the spirit of a statesman progress of heresy elsewhere and at Alexandria
than of a theologian ; and in this relation the (Simplic. Epp. 18, 19). The letters were
personal traits of liberality, courtliness, and without effect, and Simplicius died soon after-
ostentation, noticed by Suidas (I.e.), are not wards. His successor, Felix III. (II.), es-
without importance. poused the cause of Talaia with zeal, and
The first important measures of Acacius despatched two bishops, Vitalis and Misenus,
carried with them enthusiastic popular support to Constantinople with letters to Zeno and
and earned for him the praise of pope Sim- Acacius, demanding that the latter should
plicius. In conjunction with a Stylite monk, repair to Rome to answer the charges brought
Daniel, he placed himself at the head of the against him by Talaia (Felix, Epp. i, 2). The
opposition to the emperor Basiliscus, who, mission utterly failed. Vitalis and Misenus
after usurping the empire of the East, had were induced to communicate publicly with
issued an encyclic letter in condemnation of Acacius and the representatives of Mongus,
the council of Chalcedon, and taken Timo- and returned dishonoured to Italy (484). On
theus Aelurus, the Monophysite patriarch of their arrival at Rome a synod was held.
Alexandria, under his protection, a.d. 476. They were themselves deposed and excom-
The resistance was completely successful. In municated ; a new anathema was issued
the meantime Zeno, the fugitive emperor, against Mongus, and Acacius was irrevocably
reclaimed the throne which he had lost and excommunicated for his connexion with
;

Basiliscus, after abject and vain concessions to Mongus, for exceeding the limits of his juris-
the ecclesiastical power, was given up to him diction, and for refusing to answer at Rome
(as it is saidi by Acacius, after he had taken the accusations of Talaia (Evagr. H. E. iii.
sanctuary in his church, a.d. 477 (Evagr. H. E. 21 ; Felix, Ep. 6); but no direct heretical
iii. 4 ff.
; Theod. Lect. i. 30 ff. Theophan. opinion was proved or urged against him.
;

Chron. pp. 104 ff. ; Procop. B. V. i. 7, p. 195). Felix communicated the sentence to Acacius,
At this period the relations between Zeno, and at the same time wrote to Zeno, and to
Acacius, and Simplicius appear to have been the church at Constantinople, charging every
amicable, if not cordial. They were agreed one, under pain of excommunication, to
on the necessity of taking vigorous measures separate from the deposed patriarch (Epp. 9,
to affirm the decrees of the council of Chalce- 10, 12). Once again the envoy of the pope-
don, and for a time acted in concert (Simplic. was seduced from his allegiance, and on his
Epp- 5, 6). Before long a serious difference return to Rome fell under ecclesiastical cen-
arose, when Acacius, in 479, consecrated a sure (Felix, Ep. 11). For the rest, the threats
bishop of Antioch (Theophan. Chron. p. no), of Felix produced no practical effect. The
and thus exceeded the jiroper limits of his Eastern Christians, with very few exceptions,
jurisdiction. However, Simplicius admitted remained in communion with Acacius Talaia ;
. ;

ACEPHALI AETIUS •
6

acknowledged the hopelessness of his cause they were living an ascetic life together, the
by accepting the bishopric of Nola and bishopric of Sebaste became vacant. Each
;

Zeno and Acacius took active measures to of the friends was a candidate for the office.
obtain the general acceptance of the Henoti- The choice fell on Eustathius. This was
con. Under these circumstances the con- never forgiven by Aerius. Eustathius endea-
demnation of Acacius, which had been made voured to soften his friend's disappointment
in the name of the Pope, was repeated in the by at once ordaining Aerius presbyter, and
name of the council of Chalcedon, and the setting him over the hospital estabUshed at
schism was complete * (485). Acacius took Sebaste i^evo^oxelof, or -KToixoTpo^eiov). But
no heed of the sentence up to his death in 489, all his attempts were fruitless. Aerius threw
which was followed by that of Mongus in up his charge, deserted the hospital, and
490, and of Zeno in 491. Fravitas (Flavitas, openly pubUshed grave accusations against
Flavianus), his successor, during a very short his bishop. The rupture with Eustathius
patriarchate, entered on negotiations with widened into a rupture with the church.
FeUx, which led to no result. The policy of Aerius and his numerous followers openly
Acacius broke down when he was no longer separated from their fellow-Christians, and
able to animate it. In the coiurse of a few professed ciTrora^ia, or the renunciation of
years all for which he had laboured was un- all worldly goods. They were consequently
done. The Henoticon failed to restore unity denied not only admission to the churches,
to the East, and in 519 the emperor Justin but even access to the towns and villages, and
submitted to pope Hormisdas, and the con- they were compelled to sojourn in the fields,
demnation of Acacius was recognized by the or in caves and ravines, and hold their re-
Constantinopolitan chiurch. ligious assemblies in the open air exposed to
Tillemont has given a detailed history of the severity of Armenian winters.
the whole controversy, up to the death of Our knowledge of Aerius is from Epiphanius
Fravitas, in his Memoires, vol. xvi., but with (Haer. 75). Augustine, de Haeresibus, c. 53,
a natural bias towards the Roman side. The merelv epitomises Epiphanius. Aerius went
original documents, exclusive of the histories so fearlessly to the root of much that the
of Evagrius, Theophanes, and Liberatus, are church was beginning to cUng to, that we
for the most part collected in the 58th volume cannot feel much surprise at the vehemence of
of Migne's Patrologia. See also Hefele, Konz. Epiphanius with regard to his teaching.
Gesch. Bd. ii. [w.] Epiphanius asserts that he went beyond
Acephali (from d and /ce^aXi?, those without Arius in his impieties, specifying four counts.
a head or leader) is a term applied :

(i) To (i) The first, with which the name of Aerius
has been chiefly identified in modern times,
the bishops of the oecumenical council of
Ephesus in 431, who refused to follow either is the assertion of the equaUty of bishops
St. Cyril or John of Antioch —
the leaders of and presbyters, /j.ia rd^ts, /x'a rtpiij. eV d^iwf/.a.
the two parties in the Nestorian controversy. (2) Aerius also ridiculed the observance of
(2) To a radical branch of Monophysites, who Easter as a reUc of Jewish superstition. (3)
rejected not only the oecumenical council of Prayers and offerings for the dead he regarded
Chalcedon in 451, but also the Henoticon pi as pernicious. If they availed for the de-
the emperor Zeno, issued in 482 to the Chris- parted, no one need trouble himself to live
tians of Egypt, to unite the orthodox and the holily :he would only have to provide, by
Monophysites. Peter Mongus, the Monophy- bribes or otherwise, a multitude of prayers and
site patriarch of Alexandria, subscribed this offerings for him, and his salvation was secure.
compromise [Acacius (7)] ; for this reason (4) All set fasts he condemned. A Christian
many of his party, especially among the should fast when he felt it to be for his
man
monks, separated from him, and were called good appointed days of fasting were
soul's :

Acephali. They were condemned, under Jus- reUcs of Jewish bondage. Philaster, whose
tinian, by a synod of Constantinople, 536, as unconfirmed authority is very small, con-
schismatics, who sinned against the churches, founds the Aerians with the Encratites, and
the pope, and the emperor. Cf. Mansi, Cone. asserts that they practised abstinence from
torn. viii. p. 891 sqq. ;Harduin, Cone. torn. food and rejected marriage (Philast. Haer.
ii. X203 sqq. ; Walch, Ketzerhistorie, vol. vii.72). Consult Schrockh, Christliche Kirch.
Hefele, Conciliengeschichte, vol. ii. pp. 549, Gesch. vol. vi. pp. 226-234 Walch, Ketzerhist.;

744. (3) To the clerici vagi, i.e. clergy- vol. iii. pp. 221 seq. Neander, Ch. Hist. vol.
;

men belonging to no diocese (as in Isid. iii. pp. 461-563 (Clark's trans.) Herzog. Real- ;

Hispal. de Offic. EccL, the so-called Egbert's encycl. vol. i. 165 Tillemont, Hist. eccl. vol.
;

Excerpts, 160, and repeatedly in Carlo vingian ix. pp. 87 seq. [e- v.]
Councils: see Du Cange) \D. C. A. art. AetiUS ('Ae'rtos), the founder and head of
Vagi Clerici]. (4) It is said to be used the strictest sect of Arianism, upon whom,
sometimes for avTOKi(pa\oi. [D. C. A. art. on account of the boldness of his reasonings
AUTOCEPHALI.] [P-S.]
on the nature of God, was affixed the surname
Adamantius (1). [Origen.] of " the ungodly," Atieos (Soz. iii. 15)- He
AeriUS, 'Aepios, founder of the heretical sect was the first to carry out the doctrines of
of the Aerians, c. 355, still Uving when Arius to their legitimate issue, and in opposi-
Epiphanius wrote against heresies, 374-376. tion both to Homoousians and Homoiousians
He was the early friend and fellow-disciple of maintained that the Son was unlike, di^6/xoios,
EuSTATHius OF Sebaste in Pontus. While
the Father, from which his followers took the
• This appears to be the best explanation of
name of Anomoeans. They were also known
as Eunomians, from his amanuensis Euno-
the " double excommunication " of Acacius. Cf.
Mius, the principal apologist of the party and
Tillemont, Mimoires, xvi. n. 25, pp. 764 f ;
6 AETIUS AETIUS
as Heteruslasts and Exukontians, as affirming adversary by vanquishing the Manichean
that the Son was e| er^pas ovalas from the leader Aphthonius. Aphthonius, according to
Father, and created ef ovk 6vtuv. Philostorgius (H. E. iii. 15), only survived his
The events of his singularly vagrant and defeat seven days. Here Aetius took up his
chequered career are related from very differ- former professions, studying medicine and
ent points of view by the Eunomian Philos- working as a goldsmith.
torgius, and the orthodox writers Socrates, On the return of St. Athanasius to Alex-
Sozomen, Theodoret, and Gregory Nyssen. andria in 349, Aetius retired to Antioch, of
We must regard Aetius as a bold and unprin- which his former teacher Leontius was now
cipled adventurer, endowed with an indomit- bishop. By him Aetius was ordained deacon,
able love of disputation, which led him into c. 350 (Philost. iii. 17 Socr. H. E. ii. 35
;
;

incessant arguments on the nature of the God- Athan. de Synod. § 38, Oxf. trans, p. 137 ;

head, the person of our Lord, and other trans- Suidas, S.V.). His ordination was protested
cendental subjects, not only with the orthodox against by Flavian and Diodorus, and he was
but with the less pronounced Arians. He was inhibited from the exercise of his ministry
born at Antioch. His father, dying insolvent, (Theod. H. E. ii. 24). Epiphanius errone-
left Aetius, then a child, and his mother in ously asserts that he was admitted to the
extreme destitution (Philost. H. E. iii. 15 diaconate by George of Cappadocia, the in-
;

cf.Valesius's notes; Suidas, sub. voc. 'A^rtos). truding bp. of Alexandria (Epiph. Haeres.
According to Gregory Nyssen, he became the Ixxvi. i). Aetius now developed more fully
slave of a woman named Ampelis and having
;
his Anomoean tenets, and he exerted all his
obtained his freedom in some disgraceful influence to induce the Arian party to refuse
manner, became a travelling tinker, and after- communion with the orthodox. He also be-
wards a goldsmith. Having been convicted gan to withdraw himself from the less pro-
of substituting copper for gold in an ornament nounced Arians (Socr. H. E. ii. 359). This
entrusted to him for repair, he gave up his schism in the Arian party was still further-^
trade, and attaching himself to an itinerant developed at the first council of Sirmium,
quack, picked up some knowledge of medicine. A.D. 351, where he attacked the respectable
He met with a ready dupe in an Armenian, semi-Arian (Homoiousian) bishops, Basil of
whose large fees placed Aetius above the reach Ancyra and Eustathius of Sebaste (Philost.
of want. He now began to take rank as a H. E. iii. 16), reducing them to silence. Exas-
regular and recognized practitioner at Antioch perated by his discomfiture, Basil denounced
(Greg. Nys. adv. Eunoni. lib. i. vol. ii. p. 293). Aetius to Gallus. His life was spared at
Philostorgius merely tells us that he devoted the intercession of bp. Leontius ; and being
himself to the study of philosophy and dia- subsequently introduced to Gallus by Theo-
lectics, and became the pupil of Paulinus the philus Blemmys, he was sent by him to his
Arian bishop, recently removed from Tyre to brother Julian to win him back from the
Antioch, c. 323 (Philost. iii. 13). Aetius at- paganism into which he was lapsing. Gallus
tached himself to the Aristotelian form of also appointed him his religious teacher
philosophy, and with him, Milman remarks (Philost. H. E. iii. 27; Greg. Nys. u.s. p. 294).
(Hist, of Christianity, vol. ii. p. 443), the strife The fall of Gallus in 354 caused a change in
between Aristotelianism and Platonism among the fortunes of Aetius, who returned to Alex-
theologians seems to have begun. His chief andria in 356 to support the waning cause of
study was the Categories of Aristotle, the scope Arianism. The see of Athanasius was then
of which, according to Socrates (H. E. ii. 35), he occupied by George of Cappadocia, under
entirely misconceived, drawing from them soph- whom Aetius served as a deacon, and when
istical arguments repudiating the prevailing nominated to the episcopate by two Arian
Platonic mode of argument used by Origen and bishops, Serras and Secundus, he refused to be
Clemens Alex. On the death of Paulinus his consecrated by them on the ground that they
protector, c. 324, he was banished to Anazar- had held communion with the Homoousian
bus in Cilicia, where he gained his livelihood by party (Philost. iii. 19). Here he was joined
his trade. Here his dialectic skill charmed a by his renowned pupil and secretary Eunomius
grammarian, who instructed him more fully, (Greg. Nys. u.s. p. 299 Socr. H. E. ii. 22
; ;

receiving repayment by his menial ser\ices. Philost. H. E. iii. 20). Greater troubles were
Aetius tried his polemic powers against his now at hand for Aetius. Basil of Ancyra de-
benefactor, whom he put to public shame by nounced him to the civil power for his supposed
the confutation of his interpretation of Scrip- complicity in the treasonable designs of Gallus,
ture. On the ignominious dismissal which natu- and he was banished to Pepuza in Phrygia.
rally followed, Athanasius, the Arian bishop of The influence of Ursacius and Valens procured
the place, opened his doors to the outcast, and his recall but he was soon driven again into
;

read the Gospels with him. Aetius also read exile. The hard irreverence of Aetius, and
St. Paul's Epistles at Tarsus with Antouius, the determination with which he pushed con-
who, like Athanasius, was a disciple of Lucian, clusions from the principles of Arius, shocked
Arius's master. On Antonius's elevation to the more religious among the Arian party, and
the episcopate, Aetius returned to Antioch, forced the bishops to use all measures to crush
where he studied the prophets, particularly him. His doctrines were also becoming alarm-
Ezekiel, with Leontius, afterwards bishop ingly prevalent. " Nearly the whole of
of that see, also a pupil of Lucian. A Antioch had suffered from the shipwreck of
storm of impopularity soon drove him from Aetius, and there was danger lest the whole
Antioch to Cilicia but having been defeated (once more) should be submerged " (Letter
;

in argument by one of the Borborian Gnostics, of George, bp. of Laodicea, ap. Soz. H. E. vi.
he betook himself to Alexandria, where he 13). A synod was therefore appointed for
soon recovered his character as an invincible Nicomedia in Bithynia. A violent earthquake
AFMCANUS, JULIUS AFRICANUS, JULIUS 7

and the intrigues of the court brought about a comparative view of sacred and profane his-
its division into two synods. The West met tory from the creation of the world, demanded
at Ariminum the East at Seleucia in Isauria,
;
extensive reading ;and the fragments that
A.D. 359- The latter separated without any remain refer to the works of a considerable
definite conclusion. The Arians, semi- Arians,
'
' number of historical writers. His only work
and Anomoeans, mingled in tumultuous strife, now extant in a complete state is his letter
and hurled anathemas at one another " (Mil- to Origen referred to by many authors (Eus.
man, Hist. Christ, iii. c. 8). Whatever triumph H. E. vi. 31 Hieron. de Vir. III. c. 63 Photius,
; ;

was gained rested with the opponents of the Cod. 34 Suidas, s.v. A(ppiKav6i Niceph. Call.
; ' ;

Aetians, who appealed to the emperor and the H. E. V. 21, and others). The correspondence
court, and a second general council was sum- originated in a discussion between Origen and
moned to meet at Constantinople (Athan. de a certain Bassus, at which Africanus was pre-
Synod. § lo, 12). Of this council Acacius sent, and in which Origen appealed to the au-
was the leading spirit, but a spHt occurred thority of that part of the Book of Daniel which
among the Anomoean followers of Aetius. The contains the story of Susanna. Africanus
party triumphed, but its founder was sent into afterwards wrote a short letter to Origen urg-
banishment, first to Mopsuestia, then to Am- ing several objections to the authenticity of
blada in Pisidia. Here he gained the good- this part of the book ; among others, that the
will of the savage inhabitants by his prayers style is different from that of the genuine book,
having, as they supposed, averted a pestilence that this section is not in the book as received
(Theod. ii. 23 Soz. iv. 23, 24
;
Philost. iv. 12 ; ; by the Jews, and that it contains a play on
Greg. Nys. u.s. p. 301). Gk. words which shews that, unUke other
The death of Constantius, a.d. 361, put an O.T. books, it was originally written in Gk.
end to Aetius's exile. J ulian recalled all the and not in Heb. Origen replied at greater
banished bishops and invited Aetius to his length. That Africanus had any intimate
court {Ep. Juliani, 31, p. 52, ed. Boisson Soz. ; knowledge of Heb. must not be regarded as
V. 5),and at the instance of Eudoxius (Philost. proved by this letter. The date of the corre-
ix. 4) presented him with an estate in the is- spondence is hmited by the facts that Origen
land of Lesbos. The ecclesiastical censure was writes from Nicomedia, having previously
taken off Aetius by Euzoius, the Arian bp. of visited Palestine, and refers to his labours in
Antioch {ib. vii. 5), who, with the bishop of a comparison of the Gk. and Heb. text, indi-
his party, compiled a defence of his doctrines cating that he had already published the
{ib. According to Epiphanius {Haer.
viii. 2). Hexapla. These conditions are best satisfied
U.S.), he was consecrated bishop at Constanti- by a date c. 238.
nople, though not to any particular see and ;
Not less celebrated is the letter of Africanus
he and Eunomius consecrated bishops for his to Aristides on the discrepancy in our Saviour's
own party (Philost. viii. 2). On the death of genealogies as given by St. Matthew and St.
Jovian, a.d. 364, Valens shewed special favour Luke. A considerable portion of this has been
to Eudoxius, between whom and Aetius and preserved bv Eusebius {H. E. i. 7), and Routh
Eunomius a schism had arisen. Aetius in dis- (Rel. Sac. if. 228) has pubHshed this together
gust retired to his farm in Lesbos (ih. ix. with a fragment not previously edited. A
4). The revolt of Procopius once more en- compressed version of the letter is given also in
dangered his life. He was accused to the Eusebii ad Stephanum, Quaest. iv. (Mai, Script.
governor, whom Procopius had placed in the Vet. Nov. Coll. vol. i.). Africanus begins by
island, of favouring the cause of Valens, rejecting a previous explanation that the gene-
A.D. 365-366 [ib. ix. 6). Aetius returned to alogies are fictitious lists, designed to establish
Constantinople. He was the author of several our Lord's claim to be both king and priest by
letters to Constantius and others, filled with tracing His descent in one Gospel from Solomon,
subtle disquisition on the nature of the Deity in the other from Nathan, who was assumed to
(Socr. ii. 35), and of 300 heretical proposi- be Nathan the prophet. Africanus argues the
tions, of which Epiphanius has preserved 47 necessity of maintaining the literal truth of
[Haer. Ixxvi. § 10), with a refutation of each. the Gospel narrative, and against drawing dog-
Hefele, Konz. Gesch. Bd. i. [e.v.] matic consequences from any statements not
AfricanUS, Julius {'AcppLKavos), a Christian founded on historical fact. He then gives his
writer at the beginning of the 3rd cent. A own explanation, founded on the levirate law
great part of his life was passed at Emmaus in of the Jews, and professing to be traditionally

Palestine not, however, the Emmaus of St. derived from the Desposyni (or descendants of
Luke (xxiv. 16), as assumed by the ancient the kindred of our Lord), who dwelt near the
authorities (Soz. H. E. v. 21 Hieron. in libra
; villages of Nazareth and Cochaba. According
de Locis Hebraicis, s.v. 'E/jL/xaovs, ii- p. 439 et ; to this view Matthew gives the natural, Luke
in Epitaph. Paulae, iv. p. 673) but, as Reland ; the legal, descent of our Lord. Matthan, it is
has shewn in his Palaestina, pp. 427, 758 (see said, of the house of Solomon, and Melchi of the
also Smith's Diet, of Geogr. s.v. Emmaus), house of Nathan, married the same woman,
the Emmaus in the plain (i Mace. iii. 40), 22 whose name is given as Estha. Heli the son of
Roman miles =
176 stadia) from Jerusalem.
( Melchi (the names Matthat and Levi found in
He may have been born a.d. 170 or a little our present copies of St. Luke are omitted by
earlier, and died a.d. 240 or a little later. Africanus) having died childless, his uterine
There seems to be no ancient authority for brother Jacob, Matthan's son, took his wife
dating his death a.d. 232. and raised up seed to him so that the offspring
;

Africanus ranks with Clement and Origen as Joseph was legally Heli's son as stated by St.
among the most learned of the ante-Nicene Luke, but naturally Jacob's son as stated by
fathers (Socr. H. E. ii. 35 Hieron. Ep. ad
; St. Matthew. For a critical examination and
Magnum, 83, vol. iv. p. 656). His great work, defence of this solution, which is adopted by St.
.

8 AFRICANUS, JULIUS AGAPETUS


Augustine {Retract, lib. ii. c. vii.), see Mill, On that Jacob's had been preserved in
tent
the Mythical Interpretation of the Gospels, p. 20 1 Edessa until struck by lightning in the reign
The great work of Africanus was his " accu- of the emperor Antoninus (Elagabalus ?).
rately laboured" (Eus. H. E. vi. 31) treatise Africanus probably had personally visited
on chronology, in five books. As a whole it is Edessa, whose king, Abgarus, he elsewhere
lost,but we can form a good idea of its general mentions.
character from the still remaining Chronicon of The work in all probability concluded with
Eusebius, which was based upon it, and which the Doxology, which St. Basil has cited {de
undoubtedly incorporates much of it. Euse- Spir. Sanct. § 73, iii. 61) in justification of the
bius himself, p. 132, mentions Africanus among form of doxology avv 'Ayiui [Ivevixan.
his authorities for Jewish history, subsequent It remains to speak of another work, the
to O.T. times. Several fragments of the work of Kearoi, expressly ascribed to Africanus by Euse-
Africanus can be identified by express quota- bius {H. E. vi. 31), Photius (^c), Suidas {Lc),
tions, either by Eusebius in his Praeparatio and and Syncellus (p. 359), perhaps (as Scaliger
Demonstratio Evangelii, or by other writers, in suggests) quoting the Chronica of Eusebius.
particular by Georgius Syncellus in his Chrono- According to this authority, the work consisted
graphia. These have been collected by Gal- of nine books and it is probably owing to
;

landi (Bibl. Vet. Pat. vol. ii.), and more fully by errors of transcribers that we now find Photius
Routh [Rel. Sac. vol. ii.). enumerating 14 and Suidas 24. The work
Christian Apologists had been forced to en- seems to have received the fanciful name of
gage in chronological discussions, to remove Cesti, or variegated girdles, from the miscella-
the heathen contempt of Christianity as a neous character of its contents, which em-
novelty, by demonstrating the great antiquity braced the subjects of geography, natural his-
of the Jewish system, out of which the Chris- tory, medicine, agriculture, the art of war, etc.
tian sprang. Thus Tatian {Or. ad Graec. c. The portions that remain have suffered muti-
39), Theophilus of Antioch (ad. Autol. iii. 21), lation and addition by different copyists. The
Clement of Alexandria (Stromata, i. 21), dis- external evidence for ascribing the Cesti and"
cuss the question of the antiquity of Moses, Chronology to the same author is too strong to
and, following Josephus (cont. Apion. i. 16), be easily set aside, and is not without some in-
arrive at the conclusion that Moses was a con- ternal confirmation. Thus the author of the
temporary of Inachus, and that the Exodus Cesti was better acquainted with Syria than
took place 393 years before the coming of with Libya for he mentions the abundance of
;

Danaus to Argos. Africanus set himself to a certain kind of serpent in Syria, and gives its
make a complete synopsis of sacred and pro- Syrian name {Vet. Math. p. 290), but when he
fane history from the Creation, and to establish gives a Libyan word (Geopon. p. 226) he does
a synchronism between the two. He concludes so on second-hand testimony. And he was a
that Moses and Ogyges were contemporaries. Christian, for he asserts (Geopon. p. 178) that
He thinks a connexion between the Ogygian wine may be kept from spoiling by writing on
deluge and the plagues of Egypt likely ;
and the vessels " the divine words, Taste and see
confirms his conclusions by deducing from that the Lord is gracious." The unlikelihood
Polemo, Apion, and Ptolemaeus Mendesius, of Africanus having written such a work be-
that Moses was a contemporary of Inachus, comes less if we look upon him not as an eccle-
whose son, Phoroneus, reigned at Argos in the siastic, but as a Christian philosopher, pursuing
time of Ogj'ges. Africanus follows the LXX : his former studies after his conversion, and
he counts 2262 years to the Deluge he does
; entering in his note-books many things more
not recognize the second Cainan he places the
; in accordance with the spirit of his own age
Exodus A.M. 3707. In computing the years than with that of ours. Cf. Harnack on J ulius
of the Judges he is blamed by Eusebius for Africanus Sextus in Herzog, 3rd ed. The
lengthening the chronology by adding, without last edition of the Chronography is in Gelzer,
authority, 30 years for the elders after Joshua, Sex. Jul. Afr. (2 vols. Leipzig, 1880-1898) ;

40 for anarchy after Samson, and 25 years of see also Spitta (Halle, 1877) on the letter to
peace. He thus makes 740 years between the Aristides, Harnack, Lit. i. 507-513 and ii. i,
Exodus and Solomon. Our Lord's birth he pp. 124 sqq. [G.S.]
places A.M. 5500, and two years before our Agapetus, bp. of Rome, was, we are told, a
common computation of Anno Domini. But Roman by birth, the son of Gordianus a priest
he allows only one year for our Lord's public (Anast. quoted by Clinton, Fasti Romani,
ministry, and thus dates the Crucifixion a.m. p. 763 ;
Jaffe, Regesta Pontificum, p. 73). He
5531. He calculates the commencement of was already an old man when, six days after
the 70 weeks from the 20th year of Artaxerxes : the death of Johannes II., he was elected pope
from this to the death of our Lord he counts in June 535. He began by formally reversing
only 475 years, contending that the 70 weeks an act of Bonifacius II., one of his own imme-
of Daniel are to be understood as 490 lunar diate predecessors, fulminating anathemas
years of 354 days each, equivalent to 475 against the deceased antipope Dioscorus, a.d.
Julian years. 530 (Anast. vol. i. p. 100).
Another interesting passage in the xPoi'iKo. is Wenext find him entering Constantinople
one in which he treats of the darkness at the on Feb. 19, 536 (Clint. F. R. p. 765), sent
Crucifixion, and shews, in opposition to the thither by Theodahad to avert, if possible, th'e
Syrian historian Thallus, that it was miracu- war with which he was threatened by the em-
lous, and that an eclipse of the sun could not peror Justinian in revenge for the murder of
have taken place at the full moon. Lastly, we his queen Amalasontha and we are told tha'"
:

may notice his statement that there were still he succeeded in the objects of his missioi,'
in his time remains of Jacob's terebinth at (Anast. vol. i. p. 102), which must refer t<^
Sbechem, Gen. xxxv. 4, held in honour ; and other objects, for be certainly failed to aver^^
AGATHA A6N0ETAE 9

the war J ustinian had already incurred such


;
headed at Rome under Diocletian, celebrated
expense as to be unwilling to turn back (Lib- by Ambrose {de Offic. i. 41 de Virg. ad Mar-
;

erat. quoted by Baronius, Annales Ecclesi- cell, i. 2), Jerome {Ep. 97 ad demetriad.),
astici, vii. p. 314), and as a matter of fact Beli- Augustine {Serm. 273, 286, and 354), Snip.
sarius took Rome within the year. In 535 Sever. {Dial. ii. 14), Prudentius {irepi 'ZTe<f)6.vuiv,
Anthimus, who was suspected of Monothelit- xiv.), Venant. Fortunatus {Poem. vii. iii. 35'),
isra, had been appointed patriarch of Constan- Aldhelm {de Virgin.) ;and by her Acta in
tinople by the influence of Theodora. Agape- Syriac in Assemani, Act. Mart. ii. 148 seq. ;

tus, on his first arrival, refused to receive An- besides Acta falsely attributed to St. Ambrose,
thimus unless he could prove himself orthodox, a doubtful homily of St. Maxim. Taurin., and
and then only as bp. of Trebizond. for he was some verses questionably assigned to pope
averse to the practice of translating bishops. Damasus. Her name is in the Carthag. Cal. of
At the same time he boldly accused J ustinian c. 450, Jan. 21 ;in Ruinart, p. 695. A church
himself of Monophysitism who was fain to
; at Rome, in her honour, said to have been built
satisfy him by signing a " libellus fidei " and under Constantine the Great, was repaired by
professing himself a true Catholic. But the Pope Honorius, a.d. 625-638, and another was
emperor insisted upon his communicating built at Rome by Innocent X. (Assemani, Act.
with Anthimus, and even threatened him with Mart. ii. 154, 155). See also Act. SS. Jan. 21,
expulsion from the city if he refused. Agapetus on which day her name stands in the black-
replied with spirit that he thought he was visit- lettercalendar of our Prayer-book. Baeda
ing an orthodox prince, and not a second Dio- and Usuard place it on Jan. 23 the Menolog.
;

cletian. Then the emperor confronted him and Menatja on July 5. [a.w.ii.]
with Anthimus, who was easily convicted by Agnoetae (from ayvo^w, to be ignorant of), a
Agapetus. Anthimus was formally deposed, name applied to two sects who denied the
and Mennas substituted and this was done
; omniscience either of God the Father, or of God
without a council, by the single authority of the Son in His state of humiliation.
the pope Agapetus ] ustinian of course allow-
;
I. The first were a sect of the Arians, and
ing it, in spite of the remonstrances of Theo- calledfrom Eunomius and Theophronius " Eu-
dora (Anast. vol. i. p. 102 Theophanes,
; nomio-Theophronians " (Socr. H. E. v. 24).
Chronogr. p. 184). Agapetus followed up his Their leader, Theophronius, of Cappadocia,
victory by denouncing the other heretics who who flourished about 370, maintained that God
had collected at Constantinople under the knew things past by memory and things future
patronage of Theodora. He received petitions only by uncertain prescience. Sozomen {H. E.
against them from the Eastern bishops, and vii. 17) writes of him " Having given
:

from the " monks " in Constantinople, as the some attention to the writings of Aristotle,
Archimandrite coenobites were beginning to he composed an appendix to them, entitled
be called (Baronius, vii. p. 322). He died on Exercises of the Mind. But he afterwards en-
April 21, 536 (Clint. F. R. p. 765)- His body gaged in many unprofitable disputations, and
was taken to Rome and buried in St. Peter's soon ceased to confine himself to the doctrines
basilica, Sept. 17. Five of his letters remain : of his master. [Eunomius.] Under the assump-
(i) July 18, 535, to Caesarius, bp. of Aries, tion of being deeply versed in the terms of
about a dispute of the latter with bp. Con- Scripture, he attempted to prove that though
tumeliosus (Mansi, viii. p. 856). (2) Same God is acquainted with the present, the past,
date, to same, " De augendis alimoniis and the future, his knowledge on these subjects
pauperum " {ib. 855). (3) Sept. 9, 535, Reply is not the same in degree, and is subiect to some
to a letter from African bishops to his pre- kind of mutation. As this hypothesis appeared
decessor Johannes {ib. 848). (4) Same date, positively absurd to the Eunomians, they
reply to Reparatus, bp. of Carthage, who had excommunicated him from their church and ;

congratulated him on his accession {ib. 850). he constituted himself the leader of a new sect,
"
(5) March 13, 536, to Peter, bp. of Jerusalem, called after his own name, Theophronians.'
'

announcing the deposition of Anthimus and II. Better known are the Agnoetae or The-
consecration of Mennas {ib. 921). Hefele, mistiani, in the Monophysite controversy in
Konz. Gesch. Bd. ii. [g.h.m.] 6th cent. Themistius, deacon of Alexandria,
Agatha, a virgin martyred at Catana in Sicily representing a small branch of the Monophy-
under Decius, Feb. 5, 251, according to her site Severians, taught, after the death of
Acta ; but under Diocletian according to the Severus, that the human soul (not the Divine
Martyrol. and Aldhelm {de Virgin. 22) men- ; nature) of Christ was like us in all things, even
tioned by Pope Damasus a.d. 366 {Carm. v.), in the limitation of knowledge, and was ignor-
and by Venantius Fortunatus c. 580 inserted ; ant of many things, especially the day of judg-
in the Canon of the Mass by Gregory the Great ment, which the Father alone knew (Mark xiii.
according to Aldhelm {u.s., and see also S. 32,cf. Johnxi. 34). Most Monophysites rejected
Greg. M. Dial. iii. 30) and commemorated in
; this view, as inconsistent with their theory of
a homily by Methodius, c. 900. Her name is in one nature in Christ, which implied also a
the Carthag. Calendar of c. 450; in Ruinart, unity of knowledge, and they called the follow-
p. 695 and in the black-letter calendar in our
; ers of Themistius Agnoetae. The orthodox,
Prayer-book. Churches at Rome were dedi- who might from the Chalcedonian dogma of
cated to her by pope Symmachus c. 500 by ; the two natures in Christ have inferred two
Ricimer a.d. 460, enriched with her relics by kinds of knowledge, a perfect Divine and an
Gregory the Great and by Gregory H. in 726.
; imperfect human admitting of growth (Luke
She is the patroness of Malta (Butler's Lives ii. 52), nevertheless rejected the view of the

of Saints). See also the homily against Peril Agnoetae, as making too wide a rupture be-
of Idolatry, p. iii. fA.w.H.] tween the two natures, and generally under-
Agnes, M. a virgin, 12 or 13 years old, be- stood the famous passage in Mark of the official
10 ALARIC ALARIC
ignorance only, inasmuch as Christ did not charge that the calamities of the empire were
choose to reveal to His disciples the day of due to the desertion of the old or new system
judgment, and thus appeared ignorant for a of faith respectively, and the truth or falsehood
wise purpose (Kar olKovofxlav) . His inquiry of either was generally staked upon the issue.
concerning Lazarus was explained from refer- The almost miraculous discomfiture of the
ence to the Jews and the intention to increase heathen Radagaisus by Stilicho, in spite of his
the effect of the miracle. Eulogius, Patriarch vow to sacrifice the noblest senators of Rome
of Alexandria, wrote against the Agnoetae a on the altars of the gods which delighted in
treatise on the absolute knowledge of Christ, human blood, was accepted as an ill omen by
of which Photius has preserved large extracts. those at Rome who hoped for a public restora-
Sophronius, patriarch of Jerusalem, anathema- tion of Paganism (Gibbon, iv. 47-49, ed. Smith ;

tized Themistius. Agnoetism was revived by Milman, Lat. Christ, i. 122). Rome, impreg-
the Adoptionists in the 8th cent. Felix of nable while Stilicho, her Christian defender,
Urgel maintained the limitation of the know- lived, could submit only to the approach
ledge of Christ according to His human nature, of Alaric, " a Christian and a soldier, the
and appealed to Mark xiii. 32. Gallandi, Bibl. leader of a disciplined army, who understood
Patr. xii. p. 634 Mansi, Cone. xi. 502 Lcont. the laws of war, and respected the sanctity
; ;

Byz. de Sectis, Actio X. c. iii. Photius, Cod. of treaties."


;
In the first siege of Rome
230 (ed. Bekk. p. 284) Baronius, Annal. ad both pagan and Christian historians relate the
;

A.D. 535; Walch. Hist, der Ketzercien, viii. strange proposal to relieve the city by the
644-684 Baur, Lehre v. der Dreieinigkeit, etc., magical arts of some Etruscan diviners, who
;

ii. pp. 87 ff Dorner, Entwicklungsgeschichte, were believed to have power to call down
;

etc., ii. pp. 172 f ;cf. D. C. B. (4 vol. ed.) art. lightning from heaven, and direct it against
Person of Christ. [p-S.] Alaric's camp. That pope Innocent assented
AlariC (Teut. prob. = Athalaric, noble ruler), to this public ceremony rests only on the au-
general and king (398) of the Goths, the most thority of the heathen Zosimus (v. 41). It ts
civilized and merciful of the barbarian chiefs questioned whether this idolatrous rite actu-
who ravaged the Roman Empire. ally took place. Alaric perhaps imagined that
Alaric first appears among the Gothic army he was furthering the Divine purpose in be-
who assisted Theodosius in opposing Eugenius, sieging Rome. Sozomen (Hist. Eccl. ix. c. 7)
394. He led the revolt of his nation against mentions as a current story that a certain
Arcadius, ravaged the provinces south of the monk, on urging the king, then on his march
Danube, and invaded Greece 395. Athens through Italy, to spare the city, received the
capitulated, and afterwards Corinth, Argos, and reply that he was not acting of his own accord,
Sparta. Under the title of Master-General of but that some one was persistently forcing
Eastern Illyricum, 398, he became the ally of him on and urging him to sack Rome.
Arcadius and secretly planned the invasion The shock felt through the world at the
of Italy. In the winter of 402 he crossed the news of the capture of Rome in Alaric's third
Alps, was defeated by Stilicho at PoUentia on siege, 410, was disproportioned to the real
Easter Day 403, and driven from Italy- In 404 magnitude of the calamity :contrast the ex-
he exchanged the prefecture of Eastern for that aggerated language of St. Jerome, Ep. ad Prin-
of Western Illyricum, and the service of Ar- cipiam, with Orosius, 1. vii. c. 39, and St.
cadius for that of Honorius, and, after the in- Augustine, de Civ. Dei, ii. 2 (a work written be-
cursion and annihilation of Radagaisus and tween 413 and 426 with the express object of
his Sclavonian hordes in 403, he was sub- refuting the Pagan arguments from the sack of
sidized for his supposed services to the empire Rome), and his tract, de Excidio Urbis (0pp. t.
by the payment of 4,000 pounds of gold. vi. 622-628, ed. Bened.). The book in which
StiUcho's ruin and death in 408, the subsequent Zosimus related the fall of Rome has been lost,
massacre of the Goths settled in Italy, and so that we have to gather information from
Honorius's impolitic refusal of Alaric's equit- Christian sources ; but it is plain that the de-
able terms, caused the second invasion of Italy, struction and loss was chiefly on the side of
and the first siege of Rome, which ended in Paganism, and that little escaped which did
a capitulation. At the second siege in 409, not shelter itself under the protection of Chris-
preceded by the capture of Ostia, the city was tianity. " The heathens fled to the churches,
surrendered unconditionally, and Alaric set up the only places of refuge. .There alone
. .

Attains as emperor, in opposition to Honorius, rapacity and lust and cruelty were arrested and
who remained at Ravenna. At the close of stood abashed " (Milman, p. 133). The pro-
the third siege, in 410 (Aug. 24), the city was perty of the churches and the persons of Chris-
in the hands of the Goths for six days, during tian virgins were generally respected. The
three of which the sack was continued. Alaric pagan inhabitants of Rome were scattered over
died at Consentia late in 410. Africa, Egypt, Syria, and the East, and were
The effect of Alaric's conquests on the cause encountered alike by St. Jerome at Bethlehem
of Christianity, and on the spiritual position and by St. Augustine at Carthage. Innocent I.
of Rome in Western Christendom, is well was absent at Ravenna during the siege of
traced by Dean Milman {Lat. Christ, i. iio- Rome. On his return heathen temples were
140). Alaric and his Goths had embraced converted into Christian churches " with ;

Christianity probably from the teaching of Paganism expired the venerable titles of the
Ulfilas, the Arian bishop, who died in 388 religion, the great High Priests and Flamens,
(Mosheim, ed. Stubbs, i. 233). This age wit- the Auspices and Augurs. On the pontifical
nessed the last efforts of Paganism to assert throne sat the bp. of Rome, who would soon
itself as the ancient and national religion, and possess the substance of the imperial power "
Rome was its last stronghold. Pagans and lib. p. 139). Alaric was also instrumental in
Christians had retorted upon each other the driving Paganism from Greece. Zosimus (v. 7)
;

ALBANUS ALBOIN 11

asserts that on approach to Athens its walls S. Alban., is apparently a myth and the Life
his ;

were seen to be guarded by Minerva and by William of St. Albans (12th cent.) is of the
Achilles. Gibbon says that " the invasion of ordinary nature and value of lives of the kind
the Goths, instead of vindicating the honour, and date. But the testimony of Germanus,
contributed, at least accidentally, to extirpate in Constantius's Life of him, seems sufficient
the last remains of Paganism " (vol. iv. p. 37). proof that a tradition of the martyrdom of
The conquests of Alaric, though achieved at somebody named Albanus existed at Veru-
an age when the Church bo,isted many eminent lamium a century and something more after
saints and writers, afford far fewer materials the supposed date of that martyrdom. His
for the martyrologist and hagiologist than martyrdom with many fabulous details is re-
those of Attila. Alaric, though an Arian, is lated in Bede (i. 7). W. Bright, Chapters of
nowhere recorded to have persecuted the Early Ch. Hist. (1897), p. 6. [a.w.h.]
Catholics whom war had placed in his power. Albion, king of the Langobardi, or Lom-
Jornandes and Isidore of Seville, Gothic his- bards, and founder of the kingdom subject to
torians, and Orosius, a Spanish Catholic, are that people in Italy, was the son of that Audoin
equally silent on this point. The following under whom the Lombards emerge from ob-
facts of personal history have been preserved. scurity to occupy Pannonia, invited by the
In the sack of Rome Marcella, an aged matron, Emperor of Constantinople, in accordance
was thrown on the ground and cruelly beaten with the usual Byzantine policy, as a check
(Hieron. Ep. ad Princip.) a nameless lady, to the Gepidae.
; In the wars with the latter
who persistently repelled her capturer, was nation Alboin first appears. The confused
conducted by him to the sanctuary of the Vati- accounts of them which Procopius preserves
can and an aged virgin, to whose charge some exhibit the tribe and their prince as rude
;

sacred vessels had been entrusted, through her and ferocious barbarians, and Alboin was a fit
bold constancy preserved them intact. At leader of such a tribe (Paul. Diac. i. 27, ii.
the plunder of Nola in Campania, St. Paulinus 28). That he was personally a Christian,
its bishop is said to have prayed, " Lord, let though an Arian, is proved by a letter from a
me not suffer torture either for gold or silver, Gallic bishop to his first wife, a Gallic princess,
since Thou knowest where are all my
riches" which deplores, not his heathenism, but his
(Fleury, £cc/. Hist. ed. Newman, bk. xxii.c. 21). heresy (Sirmond. Cone. Gall. i.). Succeed-
Proba, widow of the prefect Petronius, retired ing his father, Alboin accomplished, by the aid
to Africa with her daughter Laeta and her of the Avars, the destruction of the Gepidae
granddaughter Demetrias (Hieron. Ep. cxxx. (see Gibbon, c. xlv.). The conquest of Italy
t. i. p. 969, ed. Vallars.), and spent her large followed. Alboin's invading army was hetero-
fortune in relieving the captives and exiles. geneous. Besides 20,000 Saxons accompanied
(See Tillemont, Mem. eccles. t. xiii. pp. 620- by their families, who recrossed the Alps after
635.) Valuable contributions to the history the conquest, Muratori has deduced (Antich.
of Alaric not already mentioned are Sigonius, It. i. diss. 1) from Italian topography the pre-
0pp. t. i. par. I, pp. 347 sqq. ed. Argellati sence of the Bavarians, and Paul. (ii. 26) adds
Aschbach, Gesch. der Westgothen. [c.d.] distinctly the names of several other tribes.
Albanus, M. The protomartyr of Britain The number of the army is unknown, but was
was martyred probably at Verulamium, and considerable, as it was a migration of the whole
according to either the " conjecture " or the tribe, and it largely changed the character and
"knowledge" (conjicitnus or cognoscimus) of arrangements of population in Italy. Alboin
Gildas, in the time of Diocletian, and if so, a.d. left Pannonia in April 568 ;the passes were
304, but according to another legend, which, unguarded, and he learnt from his own success
however, still speaks of Diocletian, in 286 the need of securing his rear and the frontier of
(Anglo-Sax. Chron., Lib. Landav.). Eusebius his future kingdom, and entrusted the defence
(H.E. viii. iT,,anddeMaH. Palaest. xiii. 10, 11), and government of Venetia Prima, his first con-
Lactantius (de Mort. Persecut. xv. xvi.), and quest, to Gisulf his nephew, with the title of
Sozomen (i. 6) deny that there was any perse- duke and the command of those whom he
cution during the time of Constantius in " the should himself select among the most eminent
Gauls," which term included Britain. Possibly, of the " Farae " or nobles (Paul. ii. ix.). From
however, Constantius may have been com- this point the conquest was rapid. In Liguria
pelled to allow one or two martyrdoms. It is (the western half of north Italy), Genoa, with
certain that 125 years after the latest date some cities of the Riviera, alone escaped.
assigned to Alban's martyrdom, 144 after the Pavia held out for three years : perhaps its
earliest, viz. a.d. 429 (Prosper, Chron.), Ger- siege was not very vigorously pressed, for we
manus visited his relics in Britain, presumably know that a great part of Alboin's force was de-
at Verulamium (Constant, in V. S. Germani, tached in flying squadrons which ravaged the
written a.d. 473-492). Gildas mentions him country southwards all through Tuscany and
in 560 (his statement, however, about the Aemilia, to so great a distance that Paul men-
persecution is of no value, being simply a tions Rome and Ravenna as almost the only
transference of Eusebius's words to Britain, places which escaped. The death of Alboin
to which Eusebius himself says they did not followed the fall of Pavia. The story of his
apply), and Venantius Fortunatus {Poem. viii. death is like that of his early life in the picture
iy. 155) c. 580. Bede, in 731, copies Constan- which it gives of a thoroughly barbaric society,
tius and certain Acta otherwise unknown. where the skull of an enemy is used as a
And the subsequent foundation of Offa in 793 drinking-cup, and the men hold their banquets
only serves to identify the place with the apart from the women (Gibbon, c. 45). Paul,
tradition. The British Life discovered by the avouches that the cup was to be seen in his
St. Albans monk Unwona in the loth cent., own day. The chief authority for the life of
according to Matthew Paris, in VV. Abb. Alboin, Paulus Diaconus, lived towards the
:; ;

12 ALEXANDER ALEXANDER
end of the 8th cent., in the last days of the can He then," asked one of the bishops,
Lombard monarchy. [e.s.t.] " change from good to evil, as Satan did ? "
Alexander, St., archbp. of Alexandria, ap- They did not shrink from answering, " Since
pears to have come to that see in 313, after He is a creature, such a change is not impos-
the short episcopate of Achillas. He was an sible " and the council instantly pronounced
;

elderly man, of a kindly and attractive disposi- them to be " anathema." Such was the ex-
tion ;
" gentle and quiet," as Rufinus says (i. communication of Arius, apparently in 320.
i), but also capable of acting with vigour and It was as far as possible from arresting the
persistency. Accusations were laid against great movement of rationalistic thought (for
him by the malcontent Meletian faction, " be- this, in truth, was the character of Arianism)
fore the emperor," Constantine (Athan. which had now so determinedly set in. The
Apol. c. Ar. II ad Ep. A eg. 23), but appar- new opinions became extraordinarily popular
;
;

ently without result. He was involved in a Alexandrian society was flooded with colloquial
controversy with one Crescentius as to the irreverence. But Arius ere long found that he
proper time for keeping Easter (Epiph. Haer. could not maintain his position in the city
70, 9). But in 3ig he was called upon to con- when under the ban of the archbishop it may ;

front a far more formidable adversary. [Arius.] be that Alexander had power actually to banish
Arius was the parish priest, as he may be de- him and he repaired to Palestine, where, as
;

scribed, of the church of Baukahs, the oldest he expected, he found that his representations
and the most important of the churches of of the case made a favourable impression on
Alexandria, situated " in the head of the mer- several bishops, including Eusebius of Caesarea.
cantile part of the city " (Neale, Hist. Alex. i. Some wrote in his favour to Alexander, who, on
116), a man whose personal abilities enhanced his part, was most indefatigable in writing to
the influence of his official position he had various bishops in order to prevent them from
;

been a possible successor at the last vacancy being deceived by Arius Epiphanius tells us
;

of the " EvangeUcal Throne," and may have that seventy such letters were preserved in his
consequently entertained unfriendly feelings time {Haer. 69. 4). Of these, some were suffi-
towards its actual occupant. But it would be ciently effectual in Palestine to constrain Arius
unreasonable to ascribe his opinions to private to seek an abode at Nicomedia. He had se-
resentment. Doubtless the habits of his mind cured the support of the bishop of the city, the
(Bright, Hist. Ch. p. 11) prepared him to adopt able but unprincipled Eusebius (Theod. i. 5 ;

and carry out to their consequences, with a Athan. deSyn. 17) and he now wrote (Athan. ;

peculiar boldness of logic, such views as he now de Syn. 16) in the name of " the presbyters and
began to disseminate in Alexandrian society deacons " who had been excommunicated, to
that the Son of God could not be co-eternal Alexander, giving a statement of their views,
with His Father that He must be regarded as and professing that they had been learned from
;

external to the Divine essence, and only a crea- Alexander himself the fact being, probably,
;

ture. The bishop tried at first to check this as Mohler thinks, that Alexander had formerly
heresy by remonstrance at an interview, but used vague language in an anti-Sabellian
with no real success. Agitation increasing, direction. Eusebius now repeatedly urged
Alexander summoned a conference of his clergy Alexander to readmit Arius to communion.
free discussion was allowed and, according to and the other bishops of Bithynia, in synod
;

Sozomen, Alexander seemed to waver between (Soz. i. 15), authorized their chief to send cir-
the Arian and anti-Arian positions. Ulti- cular letters in his favour to various prelates.
mately he asserted in strong terms the co- A Cilician bishop, Athanasius of Anazarbus,
equaUty of the Son whereupon Arius criti- wrote to Alexander, openly declaring that
;

cized his language as savouring of the Sabellian Christ was " one of the hundred sheep " ;

error [Sabellius] which had " confounded the George, an Alexandrian presbyter, then stay-
Persons." The movement increased, and ing
had the boldness to write to his
at Antioch,
Alexander himself was charged with irresolu- bishop to the effect that the Son once " was
tion or even with some inclination towards the not," just as Isaiah " was not," before he was
new errors. It was then, apparently, that born to Amoz (Athan. de Syn. 17), for which
Colluthus, one of the city presbyters, went so he was deposed by Alexander from the priest-
far as to separate from his bishop's communion, hood. Arius now returned into Palestine, and
and, on the plea of the necessities of the crisis, three bishops of that country, one of whom
" ordained " some of his followers as clergy. was Eusebius of Caesarea, permitted him to
(See Valesius on Theod. i. 4, and Neale, i. 116). hold religious assemblies within their dioceses.
Alexander's next step was to write to Arius and This permission naturally gave great offence to
his supporters, including two bishops, five Alexander. He had hitherto written only to
priests, and six deacons, exhorting them to re- individual bishops, but he now * drew up (per-
"
nounce their impiety " and the majority of haps with the help of his secretary and " arch-
;

the clergy of Alexandria and the Mareotis, at deacon," Athanasius) his famous encyclic to
his request, subscribed his letter. The ex- all his fellow-ministers, i.e. to the whole Chris-
hortation failing, the archbishop brought the tian episcopate, giving an account of the
case formally before the synod of his suffragans, opinions for which the Egyptian synod had ex-
who numbered nearly 100. The Arians were communicated the original Arians, adducing
summoned to appear they stated their Scriptural texts in refutation, and warning his
:

opinions ;the Son, they held, was not eternal, brethren against the intrigues of Eusebius
but was created by the impersonal " Word," or (Socr. i. 6). This letter, which he caused his
Wisdom of the Father foreign, therefore, to
;
• A comparatively late date for this encyclic ap-
the Father's essence, imperfectly cognizant of pears necessary, on account of its allusions to Euse-
Him, and, in fact, called into existence to be bius. (See Neale, Hist. Alex. i. 127.) Some identify
His instrument in the creation of man. " And the encyclic with the Tome.
ALEXANDER ALEXANDER 13
"
clergy to sign, probably preceded the " Tome andria (Theod. i. 4) and he was present at
;

or confession of faith which he referred to the council of Nicaea (Soz. ii. 29). When
as having been signed by some bishops, when Constantine, induced by the Eusebians (Athan.
he wrote to Alexander, bp. of Byzantium, the Ep. ad Scrap. Rufinus, Hist, i.), and deceived
;

long and elaborate letter preserved by Theod. by the equivocations of Arius (Socr. i. 37),
i. 4; in which, while using some language commanded that Arius should be received to
which in strictness must be called inaccurate, communion, Alexander, though threatened by
he gives an exposition of texts which became the Eusebians with deposition and banish-
watchwords of the orthodox in the struggle ment, persisted in his refusal to admit the
(a.d. 323). archheretic to commimion, and shut himself
Another correspondent now appesirs on the up in the church of Irene for prayer in this
scene. Eusebius of Nicomedia, who had a extremity. Alexander did not long survive
strong influence over the emperor Constantine, Arius (Socr. ii. 6 Theod. i. 19). On his death-
;

persuaded the latter to write, or to adopt and bed he is said to have designated Paulus as
sign, a letter to Alexander and Arius, in which his successor, and warned his clergy against
the controversy was treated as a logomachy the speciousness of Macedonius. [i.g.s.]
(Eus. Vit. Con. ii. 64 seq. ; Socr. i. 7). The im- Alexander, bp. of Hierapolis Euphratensis
perial epistle was entrusted to a prelate of very and metropolitan in the patriarchate of Anti-
high position, Hosius of Cordova, who can have och ;the uncompromising opponent of Cyril
had but little sympathy with the tone assumed of Alexandria, and the resolute advocate of
by the Emperor. The council held at Alexandria Nestorius in the controversies that followed the
on his arrival decided one point very unequivo- council of Ephesus, a.d. 431. His dignity as
cally the ordinations performed by Colluthus
: metropolitan gave him a leading place in the
were pronounced absolutely null (Athan. Apol. opposition of which the patriarch John of An-
76). Peace was impossible on the basis of in- tioch was the head, and his influence was con-
differentism, and Constantine summoned a gen- firmed by personal character. He may have
eral assembly of bishops to meet at Nicaea, in commenced his episcopate as early as a.d. 404,
J une 325. [D. C. A., art. Nicaea, Council of.] when with uncompromising zeal he erased
The Arians were condemned, and the Nicene from the diptychs of one of his churches the
Creed, in its original form, was drawn up. name of Julian, a man famous for sanctity, but
The story told by Epiphanius, of severities accused of ApolUnarianism (Baluz. Nov. Coll.
used by Alexander towards the Meletians Cone. p. 867).
[Meletius], and of a consequent petition ad- Alexander arrived at the council of Ephesus
dressed by them to Constantine, appears to be in companj^ with his brother metropolitan
one of several misstatements which he adopted Alexander of Apamea on or about June 20, 431.
from some Meletian sources. Athanasius tells As soon as the Alexanders discovered Cyril's
us expressly that Alexander died within five intention to open the council before John of
months after the reception of the Meletians Antioch's arrival they, on June 21, united
into church communion in the council of with the other bishops of the East in signing a
Nicaea (Apol. c. An. 59), and this, if strictly formal act demanding delay (Labbe, Concil. iii.
reckoned from the close of the council, would 552, 660, 662 Baluz. 697, 699). The council
;

place his death in Jan. 326. It cannot be heeded them not, opened their sittings the
dated later than April 18 in that year. See next day, June 22, and soon did the work for
further, Athanasius. which they had been summoned, the condem-
Athanasius mentions a circumstance of Alex- nation of Nestorius. When John at last
ander's local administration which furnished a arrived, June 27, Alexander joined in the
precedent, on one occasion, for himself. Alex- counter-council held by him and the prelates
ander was building the church of St. Theonas of his party in his inn, and signed the acts
at Alexandria, on a larger scale than any of the which cancelled the proceedings of the former
existing churches, and used it, for convenience' council, deposing Cyril and Memnon, bp. of
sake, before it was completed [Ap. ad Const. Ephesus, and declaring Cyril's anathemas here-
15). He is also said by tradition to have never tical. As a necessary consequence Alexander
read the Gospels in a sitting posture, and to was included in the sentence against John, and
have never eaten on fast days while the sun cut off from communion with Cyril's party
was in the sky (Bolland. Act. SS., Feb. 26). (Labbe, iii. 764 Baluz. 507).
; Later he joined
Two short fragments of a letter addressed by the council held by John at Tarsus, which pro-
him to a bishop named Aeglon, against the nounced a fresh sentence of deposition on
Arians, are quoted in the works of Maximus C^Til (Baluz. 840, 843, 874) also that at An-
;

the Confessor (in the Monothelite controversy), tioch in the middle of December, ratifying the
vol. ii. p. 152. A trans, of his extant writings former acts and declaring adherence to the
is in theAiite-N-icene Lib. (T. & T. Clark), [w.b.] Nicene faith. A meeting was held at Antioch
Alexander, St., bp. of Byzantium, as the early in 432, attended by Alexander, when six
city was then called (Theod. Hist. i. 19) for alternative articles were drawn up, one of which
about 23 years, his consecration being vari- it was hoped Cyril would accept, and so afford
ously dated from a.d. 313 to 317. He was al- a basis of reconciliation (ib. 764). One de-
ready 73 years old at the time (Socr. Hist. ii. 6 ; clared a resolution to be content with the
Soz. Hist. iii. 3). He is highly praised by Nicene Creed and to reject all the documents
Gregory of Nazianzum {Or. 27), and by Epi- that had caused the controversy. Another
phanius (adv. Haer. Ixix. 10). Theodoret calls council was summoned at Beroea. Four more
him an "apostolic" bishop (Hist. i. 3, cf. articles were added to the six, and the whole
Phil. 12). In the commencement of the Arian were despatched to Cyril. Cyril was well con-
troubles the co-operation of Alexander was tent to express his adherence to the Nicene
specially requested by his namesake of Alex- Creed, but felt it unreasonable that he should
14 ALEXANDER ALOGIANS
be required to abandon all he had written on revered bishop overwhelmed the people of
the Nestorian controversy (Labbe, iii. 114,1151, Hierapolis with grief. Fear of the civil au-
1 157, iv. 666 ; Baluz. 786). Cyril's reply was thorities deterred them from any open mani-
accepted by Acacius and John of Antioch, festation, but they closed the churches, shut
and other bishops now sincerely anxious for themselves up in their houses, and wept in pri-
peace, but not by Alexander or Theodoret vate. In exile at the mines of Phamuthin in
(Baluz. 757, 782). The former renewed his Egypt, Alexander died, sternly adhering to his
charge of Apollinarianism and refused to sign anathemas of Cyril to the last (Tillemont, Mem.
the deposition of Nestorius {ib. 762-763). This Eccles. xiv. xv. Labbe, Concil. vol. iii.
;
;

defection of Acacius of Beroea and John of Baluz. Nov. Collect.) [e.v.]


Antioch was received with indignant sorrow Alexander, bp. of Jerusalem, was an early
by Alexander. It was the first breach in the friend and fellow scholar of Origen at Alex-
hitherto compact opposition, and led to its andria, where they studied together under
gradual dissolution, leaving Alexander almost Pantaenus and Clemens Alex. (Eus. H. E. vi.
without supporters. In a vehement letter to 14). He was bishop of a city in Cappadocia
Andrew of Samosata, he bitterly complained {ib. vi. 11) or, according to Valesius {Not.
;

of Acacius's fickleness and protested that he ad Euseb.) and Tillemont {Mem. eccl. iii. p.
would rather fly to the desert, resign his 183), of Flaviopolis in Cilicia. He became a
bishopric, and cut off his right hand than recog- confessor in the persecution of Severus, a.d.
nize Cyril as a Catholic until he had recanted 204, and was thrown into prison, where he con-
his errors {ib. 764-765). The month of April, tinued some years. He was still a prisoner at
433, saw the reconciliation of John and the the commencement of Caracalla's reign, a.d.
majority of the Oriental bishops with Cyril 211, when he sent a letter by the hand of Cle-
fully estabhshed (Labbe, iv. 659 ;C>T:il, Ep. mens to congratulate the church of Antioch on
31, 42, 44). Alexander was informed of this the appointment of Asclepiades as their bishop
in a private letter from John, beseeching him in theroom of Serapion (Eus. vi. 11). The next
no longer to hinder the peace of the church. year he was released from prison, and, in fulfil-
Alexander's indignation now knew no bounds. ment of a vow, visited Jerusalem, where he was
He wrote in furious terms to Andrew and chosen coadjutor to the aged bp. Narcissus.
Theodoret (Baluz. 799, 800). His language This being the first occasion of the translation
became more and more extravagant, " exile, of a bishop, as well as of the appointment of a
violent death, the beasts, the fire, the preci- coadjutor bishop, and in apparent violation
pice, were to be chosen before communion of the canons of the church, it was deemed
with a heretic " {ib. 768, 775, 799, 800, 809, essential to obtain the sanction of the whole
810), and he even "made a vow to avoid episcopate of Palestine. A synod was sum-
the sight, hearing, or even the remembrance moned at Jerusalem, and the assembled bish-
of all who in their hearts turned back again ops gave their unanimous consent to the step,
to Egypt " {ib. 865). Alexander's contumacy A.D. 213 (Hieron. de Script. Eccl. Vales. Not.
;

had been regarded as depriving him of his func- in Euseb. vi. 11 Socr. vii. 36 Bingham, Ori-
; ;

tions as metropolitan. John, as patriarch, gines, bk. ii. § 4). On the death of Narcissus,
stepped in, a.d. 434, and ordained bishops in Alexander succeeded as sole bishop. His chief
the Euphratensian province. This act, of very claim to celebrity rests on the library he formed
doubtful legality, excited serious displeasure, at Jerusalem, and on the boldness with which
and was appealed against by Alexander and he supported Origen against his bishop,
six of his suffragans {ib. 831-833, 865), Demetrius of .Alexandria. [Origen.] The
The end was now near at hand. Pulcheria friendship of Alexander and Origen was warm
and Theodosius had been carefully informed of and lasting and the latter bears testimony to
;

the obstinate refusal of Alexander and the few the remarkable gentleness and sweetness of
left to support him to communicate with those character manifested in all Alexander's public
whose orthodoxy had been recognized by the instructions (Orig. Homil. I. in Lib. Reg. No.
church. John had obtained imperial rescripts i). Alexander was again thrown into prison
decreeing the expulsion and banishment of all at Caesarea in the Decian persecution, where
bishops who still refused to communicate with he died a.d. 251 (Eus. H. E. vi. 46 Hieron. ;

him {ib. 876). This rescript was executed Script. Eccl.). Eusebius has preserved some
in the case of other recusants ; Alexander still fragments of Alexander's letters to the An-
:

remained. John expressed great unwilling- tinoites, H. E. vi. 11, to the church of Antioch,
ness to take any steps towards the deprivation ib. ;to Origen, H. E. vi. 14, and to Demetrius,
of his former friend. He commissioned Theo- H. E. vi. 19. These have been published by
doret to use his influence with him. But Theo- Galland, Biblioth. Vet. Patrum, vol. ii. pp. 201
doret had again to report the impossibility of seq. Clemens Alex, dedicated his Canon
softening his inflexibility. John now, a.d. Ecclesiasticus to him (Eus. vi. 13). [e.v.]
435, felt he could not offer any further resist- Alexander I., bp. of Rome, is stated by all
ance to the imperial decrees. But no compul- the authorities to have been the successor of
sion was needed Alexander obeyed the order Evaristus.
: Eusebius {H. E. iv. 4) makes him
with calmness, and even with joy at laying succeed in a.d. 109, in his Chronicle, a.d. iii
aside the burdens and anxieties of the episco- (f. 89). He assigns him in both works a reign
pate. He went forth in utter poverty, not of ten years. He has been confused with a
taking with him a single penny of his episcopal martyr of the same name, who is mentioned
revenue, or a book or paper belonging to the in a fragment of an inscription. [g.h.m.]
church. His sole outfit consisted of some neces- Alogians, or Alogi (from d privative and
sary documents, and the funds contributed Ad-).os, deniers of the Logos, or at least of the
by friends for the hire of vehicles {ib. 868, 881, strongest witness for the Logos not from
;

883). The baniohmeut of their beloved and &\oyoi, unreasonable), a heretical sect of dis-

AMBROSIASTER AMBROSIASTER 15
puted existence in the latter half of 2nd Epistolas heati Fault, formerly ascribed to St.
cent. (c. 170). Epiphanius invented the term Ambrose and usually printed along with his
(Haeres. 1. i, adv. Al. c. 3), to characterize works. The commentary itself contains no
their rejection of the Divine Word preached by definite indication of its authorship. An in-
John {eTTu otV toc Aoyov ov MxovTaL tov irapa. cidental remark, however, on i Tim. iii. 15,
\u}d.vvovKfKijpvy/jL€vov, "AXoyoi. KXTjdrjaoPTai). " Ecclesia cujus hodie rector est Dama-
. . .

He traces their origin to Theodotus of Byzan- sus," shows that it was written during the
tium [Haer. Uv. c. i). According to his re- pontificate of Damasus (366-384). It has
presentation they denied, in ardent opposition been suggested that this clause may be an
to the Gnosticism of Cerinthus on the one interpolation but such an interpolation
;

hand, and to the Montanists on the other, that seems difficult to account for. Other marks,
Jesus Christ was the eternal Logos, as taught negative and positive, point to the same
in John i. 1-14 and rejected the Fourth
;
period. The text used is not the Vulgate,
Gospel and the Apocalypse as productions of but a prior form of the Latin version. The
Cerinthus.* Heinichen supposes that the ecclesiastical authors to whom he refers—
Alogi rejected only the Apocalypse and not Tertullian, Cyprian, Victorinus
earlier date.
belong to an
Among the heresies which he

the Fourth Gospel but this is directly con-
;

tradicted by Epiphanius (1. c. 3 cf. Haer. ;


mentions he applies himself more especially to
1. iv. i). That they attributed these books to those of the 4th cent. e.g. those of Arius,
Cerinthus, the Docetist and enemy of St. John, Novatian, Photinus while the absence of —
shows their utter want of critical judgment. allusion to later forms of error points the same
They tried to refute the Gospel of St. John by way. He speaks of the Marcionites as on the
the Synoptic Gospels, but with very poor verge of extinction (" quamvis pene defecer-
arguments. In opposition to the Montanists, int," in Ep. ad Timoth. I. iv. i). The date
they also denied the continuance of the thus indicated would be the latter half of the
spiritual gifts in the church. It is not clear 4th cent. although, in that case, it is
;

from Epiphanius whether the Alogi rejected certainly somewhat surprising that Jerome
only St. John's doctrines of the Logos, or also in his treatise de Scriptoribus Ecclesiasticis
the divinity of Christ in any form. He calls should not mention any other Latin comment-
them in his violent way c. dWorpioi ator on the Pauline Epistles than Victorinus.
(1. 3)
iravTanaaLV rod KrjpvyfjLaros It was the generally received opinion in the
ttjs dX-ndeiai ; and
says of their heresy {Haer. liv. c. i) that it Middle Ages that our author was Ambrose, bp.
denied the Gospel of St. John and the God- of Milan ; but this belief, which Erasmus was
Word taught therein {rov iv avrQ iv dpx^ ovra among the first to question, is now universally
6e6v \6yov). Yet he clearly distinguishes them
admitted to rest on no sufficient grounds,
though opinions differ much as to the probable
from the Ebionites and their opposition
;

to Cerinthus implies that they believed in the


author. From certain expressions which ap-
pear favourable to Pelagianism the work has
real humanity of Christ. Dorner (Hist, of been assigned by some to JuUan of Aeclanum
Christology, i. p. 503, German ed.) thinks it ;

but, as Richard Simon has naively remarked,


probable that they allowed no distinctions in "
if the writer does not always appear ortho-
the Godhead, and thought that the divinity
dox to those who profess to follow the doctrine
of the Father dwelt in the man Jesus. But of St. Augustine, it must be taken into account
this would identify them with the Patripas-
that he wrote before that Father had pub-
sians. Lardner {Works, iv. 190, viii. 627) lished his opinions."
doubts the existence of this sect, because of
The expressions in
question were probably employed without re-
the absence of other data, and the tendency of
ference to the Pelagian controversy, and
Epiphanius to multiply and exaggerate here- previous
to its emergence, and are, moreover,
sies. But the testimony of Epiphanius is accompanied by others
entirely incompatible
essentially sustained by Irenaeus, who men-
with a Pelagian authorship {e.g. the statement
tions persons who rejected both the Gospel
in Ep. ad Rom. v. 12, " Manifestum est in
of St. John and the prophetic Spirit {simul et Adam omnes peccasse quasi in massa ").
evangelium et propheticum repellunt Spiritum :
adv. Haer. iii. c. 11, § 9).
The only positive statement as to the
authoiship is contained in the following pas-
Epiphanius, Haer. 50, and esp. 54 M. ;
sage of Augustine, Contra duas Epistolas
Merkel, Historisch-kritische Aufkldrung der " Nam et sic
Pelagianorum, Ub. iv. c. 7 :
Streitigkeit der Aloger iiber die Apokalypsis
sanctus Hilarius intellexit quod scriptum est,
(Frankf. and Leipz. 1782); F. A. Heinichen,
in quo omnes peccaverunt ait enim, In quo, :
'

de Alogis, Theodotianis atque Artemonitis


id est in Adam omnes peccaverunt.' Deinde
(Leipz. 1829); Neander, Kirchengesch. i. ii.
addidit :Manifestum est in Adam omnes
'

pp. 906, 1003 Dorner, op. cit. vol. ii. pp. 500- peccasse quasi in massa
;
ipse enim per ;
503 Harnack, Literatttr, ii. i
; Zahn, Netttest.
;
peccatum corruptus, quos genuit omnes nati
Kanon. i. 220,
967. ii. fp.s.] sunt sub peccato.' Haec scribens Hilarius
Ambrosiaster, or Pseudo-Ambrosius, a sine ambiguitate commonuit, quomodo in-
name generally employed to denote the un- telligendum esset, in quo omnes peccaverunt."
known author of the Cotnmentaria in xiii As the words cited are found in this com-
mentary, it may be reasonably assumed that
• This, it may be remarked, is an argument
against the statement applies to it, and that Augustine
the criticism of the Tubingen school, which would
bring the composition of the Gospel of St. John down reckoned Hilarius its author. Of the persons
to the middle of the 2nd cent. for Cerinthus was of that name, Augustine elsewhere mentions
;

a contemporary of the apostle. Had the Alogi had only Hilarius the Sardinian, deacon of the
any idea of the recent origin of St. John, they would Roman church, sent by pope Liberius in 354
have made much account of it. to the emperor Constantius after the synod
— ;

16 AMBROSItS AMBROSlUS
of Aries. By many modern scholars Hilary Ambrose devoted his whole energy to en-
the deacon has been accepted as the author couraging his great master in his labours on
of the work. But Pctavius and others have Holy Scripture, and used his fortune to
objected that Augustine was not likely to further them (Eus. H. E. vi. 23). M
apply the epithet sanctus to one whom he Ambrose left no writings of his own except
must have known to be guilty of schism. some letters, but it is evident that he exer-
There can be little doubt that, whoever was cised a powerful influence upon Origen, who
the author, the work no longer retains its called him his " taskmaster/' ipyoSLu^KTi^s {in
original form. The well-meaning zeal of Johann. tom. v.), and it may have been through
copyists appears to have freely inserted com- his zeal in "collation" (Orig. Ep. 1.) that
ments from various sources, such as Augustine, Origen undertook his critical labours. Through
Chrysostom, Jerome, the commentary which mistaken devotion, Ambrose indiscreetly per-
is printed at the end of the works of Jerome mitted the publication of some unrevised
and is usually ascribed to Pelagius. These treatises of Origen which were intended only
circumstances sufficiently account for the for his own use (Hieron. Ep. 84, 10). [b.f.w.]
various forms of the text in MSS., and for the Ambrosius (2), "a chief man of Greece,"
discrepancies and inequalities of treatment and a " senator," " who became a Christian,"
in several parts. and, according to the title of the Syriac trans-
There is, moreover, a marked affinity be- lation, wrote the "Address to the Greeks"
tween this commentary and certain portions (.V670S wftbs'VjWrjvas), which is published with
of the Quaestiones Veteris et Novi Testamenii the works of Justin Martyr (Curcton, Spicil.
usuallv printed with the works of St. Augus- Syr. pp. xi. 61). There is no other trace of this
tine. The similarity of ideas and, in various tradition, nor ground for identifying him with
cases, identity of language can only be Ambrose of Alexandria. [b.f.w.]
explained by supposing either that they have Ambrosius, St., bp. of Milan (A.D. 374-397^-
had a common author, or that the writer of The chief materials for his life are his own
the one work has borrowed largely from the .-orks, which include an important collection
other. The note of time in the Quaestiones— c "-»tters. Another source is a Life by
300 years after the destruction of Jerusalem fia.. nus, his notarius or secretary, who had
and some references to contemporary events {'i vln with him at his death and wrote at the
suit the period of Damasus, and have induced Sti^'gestion of St. Augustine. This Life is full
many to ascribe this work also to Hilary the of prodigies, and adds hardly anything to
deacon. But the authorship of both remains what we learn from the works. The letters
uncertain, and probably the Quaestiones was have been reduced to a chronological order
composed subsequently to the commentary. with great care by the Benedictine editors
The commentary on the Pauline Epistles, of St. Ambrose, who have also digested the
notwithstanding its inequalities of treatment, various particulars into a useful biography.
is of great value, and is well characterized by Ambrose's fatV r, who bore the same name,
Sixtus Senensis as " brief in words, but w^s a Roman of-ihe highest rank, and at the
weighty in matter " and, although the writer time of St. Ambrose's birth was prefect of
;

is frequently controversial, he speedily returns the Galliae, a province which included Britain
to the proper work of exegesis. In conse- and Spain, and constituted one of the four
quence of his use of the old Latin version and great praetorian prefectures of the empire.
frequent reference to various readings, his The only datum for determining the year of
work affords important materials for textual Ambrose's birth is a passage in one of his
criticism. letters in which he happens to mention that
The commentary on the Epistle to the he is fifty-three years old, and at the same time
Hebrews, which accompanies the others in contrasts the quiet of Campania with the com-
some editions, but is omitted by the Benedic- motions bv which he was himself surrounded
tine editors, is a compilation from various {Ep. lix. 3). There are two periods to which
Patristic sources, principally from Chrysostom. this description would apply, a.d. 387 or
Cf. H. B. Swete, Theod. Mops. Comm. (1880), 393. If we assume, as seems most probable,
vol. i. p. Ixxviii., vol. ii. p. 351. that Ambrose was fifty-three years old in 393,
The commentary was issued separately at we shall place his birth in 340.
Cologne in 1530 and 1532. Cf. A Study of After receiving a liberal education at Rome,
A mbrosiaster by A. Souter (Camb. Univ. Press) Ambrose devoted himself to the profession of
Text and Studies, vol. vii. No. 4. [w.p.d.] the law, which was then the usual path to the
Ambrosius (1) ('AixjSpixnos) of Alexandria, a highest civil offices (see Gibbon, c. xvii.). He
deacon according to Jerome {de Vir. III. 56), practised at the court of the praetorian prefect
the disciple and friend of Origen, died c. 250. of Italy, Probus, who appointed him " con-
It is not certain whether Ambrose Vas a sular " * magistrate of the provinces of Liguria
Christian by birth ; but he was of a noble and Aemilia. He made an admirable
and wealthy family (Orig. Exhort, ad. Mart. magistrate, and became known to the people
14 f. 49 Hieron. I.e.), and probably occupied of Milan, where he held his court, as a high-
;

some office under the Imperial Government minded, conscientious, and religious man.
(Epiph. Haer. 64, 3 cf. Orig.
: tb. c. 36). Whilst he was discharging his office, Auxen-
Endowed with an active and critical mind, he tius, whom the Arian party had foisted into
at first neglected the simple teaching of the the see of Milan, died. The Catholic partv
Ciospel for the more philosophic systems of had now grown stronger, and a vehement strife
heresy (Orig. in Johann. tom. v.l. However, • The empire was divided into 116 provinces, of
when he met Origen he recognized his true which 3 were governed by pro-consuls, 37 by
teacher, and embraced the orthodox faith consulars, 5 by correctors, and 71 by presidents
(Epiph. I.e.). From that time to his death (Gibbon, U.S.).
AMBROStUS AMBROSms 17

arose as to the appointment of a successor mons, are chiefly of interest with reference to
to Auxentius. The consular came down to the history and character of their author but
;

the church to keep the peace and was ad- they are lively and ingenuous, full of good
dressing the people in his character as a civil practical advice, and interspersed with gnomic
magi«trate, when a cry (which tradition sentences of much felicity.
asserts to have been that of a child) was One of the secrets of Ambrose's influence
heard, " Ambrose for bishop " In a moment
! over the people was his admission of them into
it struck the whole multitude as a solution in all his interests and cares. He had nothing
which both parties might acquiesce without private from the congregation in the Basilica.
the sense of defeat, and a unanimous shout The sister Marcellina and the brothers Satyrus
"
arose, " We will have Ambrose for bishop ! and Ambrose (this was the order of their ages)
Itwas a singular choice, even for those rougher were united together by a remarkable affec-
and more tumultuous times, for Ambrose was tion. The three loved one another too de-
not yet so much as baptized. But he was an votedly to think of marrying. Marcellina
earnest Christian in his belief, and had only became early a consecrated virgin, but con-
been kept from seeking baptism by a religious tinued to feel the keenest and tenderest
awe, of which there were then many examples. concern in her brothers' lives. When Ambrose
Such an one natmrally shrank from being became a bishop, Satyrus appears to have
made bishop. With undoubted sincerity, he given up an important appointment in order
resisted this popular nomination. He was, to come and live with his brother and take
he says, raptus a tribunalibus ad sacerdotium every secular care off his hands. These
de Officiis, i. 4). He was baptized, passed domestic virtues of Marcellina and Sat^Tus we
summarily through the intermediate eccle- learn from sermons of Ambrose. His dis-
siastical stages, and on the eighth day was courses on virginity became famous, and
consecrated bp. of Milan. This was in the attracted virgins from distant parts to receive
year 374 (a year after the death of Athan- consecration at his hands. These discourses,
asius, and before the death of Valentinian in the third year after his ordination, he
I.), Ambrose being thirty-four years of a^^'. digested into three books, de Virginibus,
The vox populi was never more thoro' which were addressed in their new form to his
justified. The foundation of his exec : sister, and which contain, besides much praise
was laid in a singular and unsullied pun of Marcellina, the address made to her at her
character. In the see of Milan Ambrose .ad consecration by the bp. of Rome. A year or
found precisely his place, and he laboured two later occurred the death of Satyrus, in
indefatigably as its bishop for twenty-three the flower of his age. In the depth of his
years till his death. grief Ambrose pronounced a funeral discourse
One of his first cares after his ordination was upon his brother (de Excessu Satyri), which
to divest himself of the charge of private was followed seven days after by a sermon
property. As a member of a wealthy family upon the hope of a future life {de Fide Res.).
he appears to have posses 1 both money and The bp. of Milan, exercising the authority of
lands. What he did not give away to the poor a patriarchate, and presiding over a city which
or the church or reserve as an income for his was frequently the residence of the emperor,
sister, he placed entirely under the manage- was a great dignitary. But we cannot fail to
ment of a dearly loved brother named Satyrus. recognize the high reputation which Ambrose
He was thus free to devote his whole energies had won for himself personally and in a sur-
to the work of his calling. His writings prisingly short period, when we observe the
enable us to follow him in both his ordinary deference paid to him by the emperors of his
and his extraordinary occupations. He was time. He was certainly fortunate in the
wont to " celebrate the sacrifice " every day sovereigns with whom he had to do. The
{Ep. XX. 15). Every Lord's Day he preached youths Gratian and Valentinian II., and the
in the Basilica. His extant works consist great Theodosius, were singularly virtuous and
mainly of addresses and expositions which had religious princes. Gratian was a boy of six-
been first spoken in the church and were after- teen when the death of his father placed him
wards revised for publication. They bear on the throne, and in the year 377, the third
traces of this mode of composition in their of Ambrose's episcopate, he was two years
simplicity and naturalness, and also in their older. In that year he was preparing to go
popular character and undigested form. to the assistance of his uncle Valens against
Ambrose had to begin, as he ingenuously de- the barbarian invaders by whom he was hard
clares, to learn and to teach at the same'time pressed ; and desiring to be fortified against
{de Officiis, lib. i. cap. i. 4). In doctrine he the arguments of the Arians whom Valens was
followed reverently what was of best repute in favouring at Constantinople, he wrote to
the church in his time, carefully guarding his Ambrose, and asked him to furnish him with a
own and his people's orthodoxy from all controversial treatise in support of the ortho-
heresy, and urging, but with wholesome, if not dox faith. Ambrose complied with the pious
always consistent, qualifications, the ascetic youth's request by writing two books de Fide.
religious perfection which the best Christians In the following year Gratian wrote a letter,
were then pursuing. The sacred books, for preserved with those of Ambrose, in which he
which he had a profound reverence, were to requests another copy of that work, together

him what pastoral and didactic theology has with an additional argument upon the divinity

always tended to iilake them verbal mater- of the Holy Spirit. In this letter he calls
ials for edification, which was to be extracted Ambrose parens. Ambrose amplified his
from them by any and every kind of inter- former treatise by adding three books to the
pretation to which their letter could be two he had already composed. This work de
subjected. His writings, therefore, or ser- Fide was reckoned an important defence of the
2
Ig AMBROSIUS AMBROSIUS
orthodox faith. The work de Spiritu Sancto, tells us the singularly eminent position
of
in three books, was written in the year 381. of St. Ambrose (vi. 3), of his reputation for
The successes of the Goths which attended eloquence (vi. 13), of the difficulty of getting
the defeat and death of Valens were the an opportunity of conversing with him on
occasion of frightful calamities to the empire. account of his many engagements, and his
From lUyricum and Thrace, especially, an habit of reading to himself when company was
immense number of captives were carried off present (v. 3), and of his method of expounding
by the barbarians, in ransoming whom the the Old Testament by finding under the letter
whole available resources of the church were a spiritual or mystical sense (vi. 4).
exhausted by Ambrose and when everything
; It was during this period, in the years 385-6,
else had been taken, he did not scruple to that Ambrose defended the churches of Milan
break up and sell the sacramental vessels. so stoutly against the intrusion of Arian wor-
He himself relates this fact with pride (de ship. J ustina, who patronized the languishing
Off. lib. ii. 136, 138). We now see Ambrose Arian party, was bent on obtaining one of the
zealous in the general affairs of the church, churches at Milan for the use of her friends.
and the leading ecclesiastic of his time. Pre- Ambrose was not likely to make the con-
siding in the council of Aquileia, 381, he cession. How in this matter he resisted the
questioned the two Arianizing prelates who violent efforts of J ustina, and the authority of
were put on their trial before it. Several her son (at this time fifteen years of age), is
letters addressed to the emperor at this time described at length by Ambrose himself in
in the name of the council of Aquileia or of the letters to his sister Marcellina and to Valen-
Italian episcopate on the general government tinian, and in a sermon preached at the crisis
of the church are preserved amongst Am- of the struggle {Epp. xx. xxi., and the Sermo
brose's letters {Epp. ix.-xii.). When Acholius de Basilicis Tradendis which follows them).

died the bp. of Thessalonica by whom Theo- There appear to have been two churches at
dosius had been baptized^his death was Milan, the one without, the other within, th«.
formally announced to Ambrose b}' the clergy walls. The former, as of less importance,
and people of his diocese and we have two
; was first asked for. This being refused, some
letters in reply, one written to the church persons of the court came to Ambrose, and
and the other to Anysius the new bishop.
The next two letters of the collection (xvii., — —
begged him to concede probably for partial
use only the newer and larger basilica, and
xviii.) are addressed to the emperor Valen- to exert his influence to prevent any popular
tinian, after the death of Gratian, to exhort disturbance. For it is important to observe
him not to comply with a request of Symma- that throughout the struggle the people were
chus, prefect of the city, that he would replace on the Catholic side. Ambrose replied loftily
the altar of Victory in the Senate House, and that the temple of God could not be sur-
restore the funds for certain heathen cere- rendered by His priest. The next day, which
monies. Ambrose, whose influence was in- was Sunday, as Ambrose was officiating in
voked by the bp. of Rome, protested strongly the principal basilica, news came that police-
against any such concessions to paganism ;
agents had been sent from the palace, who
and Victory, as it was said, favoured in the were hanging on the Portian basilica the cur-
result her enemy more than her champion. tains which marked a building as claimed for
The struggle between Ambrose and J ustina, the imperial treasury. A part of the multitude
the mother of Valentinian H., which after- hastened thither Ambrose remained to per-
;

wards reached such a height at Milan, had form Mass. Then he heard that the people
been begun with a preliminary trial of strength had seized on a certain Arian presbyter, whom
about the appointment of a bishop at Sirmium. they met on the way. Ambrose began to
But when the usurpation of Maximus occurred pray with bitter tears that the cause of the
(a.d. 383), and had been stained by the church might not be stained with blood and ;

violent death of Gratian, J ustina in her alarm sent presbyters and deacons, who succeeded
had recourse to the great Catholic bishop, and in rescuing the prisoner unhurt. J ustina, in
persuaded him to go on an embassy to Max- her irritation, treated the rich men of the city
imus, to beg him to leave Italy untouched. as responsible for a tumult, and threw many
Maximus had Theodosius to deal with behind of them into prison. The imperial authority
the boy-emperor and his mother and his first
; was being dangerously strained. Politic offi-
act, when Gaul had fallen into his hands, was cials came to Ambrose and entreated him to
to send to Theodosius and propose to him, give way to the sovereign rights of the em-
instead of war, the partition of the empire. peror Ambrose replied that the emperor had
;

Theodosius was constrained by motives of no rights over what belonged to God. A


policy to assent to the proposal and Ambrose
; body of troops was sent to take possession of
had the comfort of returning to Milan with the basilica, and there was great fear of blood ^
the announcement that the new emperor being shed ; but after mutual appeals between
would refrain from passing the boundary of their officers and Ambrose, the soldiers with-
the Alps. Allusions are made to this embassy drew, and Ambrose remained all day in the
in a letter of Ambrose (Ep. xxiv. 7) in which church. At night he went home, and on
he reports the less successful issue of a later coming out the next morning he found that
appeal to Maximus. the church (the Portian) was surrounded by
One of the chief glories of Ambrose is that soldiers. But the soldiers were in awe of
St. Augustine ascribed to him his conver- Ambrose, and, learning that he had threatened
sion, and sought Christian baptism at his them with excommunication, they began to
hands. The circumstances of his intercourse crowd in, protesting that they came to pray
with St. Ambrose (a.d. 383-387) are related and not to fight. Ambrose took the lesson
by St. Augustine in his Confessions. He for the day as the subject of a sermon, and
"

AMBROSIUS AMBROSIUS 19

whilst he was preaching he was told that the a narrative from St. Ambrose's own pen, in a
imperial curtains were taken down. The letter to Marcellina (Ep. xxii.), of the wonder-
emperor was worsted by the bishop, and was ful discovery of the remains of two martyrs,
naturally angry. He sent a secretary to and of the cures wrought by them. A basilica
reproach Ambrose, and ask if he meant to was to be dedicated, and Ambrose was longing
make himself a tyrant. Soldiers continued to to find some
relics of martyrs. A
presage
surround the church, and Ambrose remained suddenly struck him. (This " presagium " is
there singing psalms with the faithful. called a vision by St. Augustine, Conf. Ix. 7,
The next day the soldiers were withdrawn, de Civ. Dei, xxii. 8.) He caused the ground
and the merchants who had been imprisoned to be opened in the church that was conse-
were released. The struggle was over but
; crated by the remains of St. Felix and St.
Ambrose heard that the emperor had said Nabor. Two bodies were found, of wonderful
bitterly to the soldiers, "If Ambrose orders size (ut prisca aetas ferehat), the heads
you, you will give me up in chains." He severed from the shoulders, the tomb stained
records another saying, which drew from him with blood. This discovery, so precious to a
a retort of characteristic felicity. The court church " barren of martyrs," was welcomed
chamberlain sent him a message :
" Whilst I with the wildest enthusiasm. Old men began
am alive, shall you despise Valentinian ? I to remember that they had heard formerly the
will take off your head." Ambrose answered
" May God grant you to fulfil what you
: —
names of these martyrs Gervasius and Pro-

tasius -and had read the title on their grave.
threaten for then my fate will be that of a
; Miracles crowded thick upon one another.
bishop, your act will be that of a eunuch." They were mostly cures of demoniacs, and of
In the course of the following year the sickly persons ; but one blind man received
attempts of the Arian part}', and of the em- his sight. Ambrose himself, for once, eagerly
peror as at this time governed by that party, and positively affirms the reality of the cure ;

were renewed. Ambrose was asked to holcl and Augustine, who generally held that the
a discussion with Auxentius, an Arian bishop, age of miracles was past, also bears witness to
before chosen judges in the presence of the the common acceptance of the fact at Milan.
court, or else to withdraw from Milan. He Gibbon has some excuse for his note, " I
consulted such bishops and presbyters as were should recommend this miracle to our divines,
within reach, and in their name wrote a letter if it did not prove the worship of relics, as well
to the emperor (£/>. xxi.), declining the dis- as the Nicene Creed." The Arians, as we
cussion. An alarm was spread amongst the learn from Ambrose and Paulinus, made light
people that he was going to be taken away of the healing of demoniacs, and were sceptical
from Milan, and for some days, by night and about the blind man's history. The martyrs'
by day, he was surrounded and watched by bones were carried into the " Ambrosian
an immense concourse of his friends. He Basilica (now the church of St. Ambrogio), and
preached them a sermon {de Basilicis Traden- deposited beneath the altar in a place which
dis), assuring them of his steadfastness, and Ambrose had designed for his own remains.
encouraging them to confidence, and at the The memory of this conflict did not restrain
same time gave them hymns composed by Justina and her son from asking help shortly

himself to sing hymns in honour of the after of Ambrose. It was evident that

Trinity by which their fervour was greatly Maximus was preparing to invade Italy and ;

stimulated. Again the court party found as Ambrose had apparently been successful in
themselves worsted, and gave way. his former embassy, he was charged with
The singing of hymns, by which this re- another conciliatory appeal to the same ruler.
markable occupation of the basilica was char- The magnanimous bishop consented to go, but
acterized, is described by St. Augustine as he was unfavourably received, and having
extremely moving {Conf. vi. 7), and is said given great offence by abstaining from com-
by him to have been an imitation of Eastern munion with the bishops who were about
customs, and to have been followed generally Maximus, he was summarily ordered to return
throughout the church. Paulinus also ob- home. He reports the failure of his mission
serves that at this time " antiphons, hymns, in a letter to Valentinian [Ep. xxiv.). It is
and vigils began to be performed iii the worthy of remark that the punishment of
church of Milan, and had spread thence heresy by death was so hateful to Ambrose
amongst all the churches of the West " {Vita, that he declined communion with bishops who
13). The reputation of St. Ambrose as a had been accomplices in it ("qui aliquos, devios
composer of hymns was such that many cer- licet a fide, ad necem petebant," ib. 12).
tainly not his have been attributed to him, These bishops had prevailed on Maximus to
and amongst them the Te Deum. The Bene-
dictine edition gives twelve hymns, which

put to death Priscillian the first time that
heresy was so punished. [Priscillianus.]
there is some good authority for ascribing to Maximus was not diverted from his project.
Ambrose, the best known of which are those He crossed the Alps, and Justina, with her son,
beginning Aeterne rerunt conditor, Deus creator fled to Theodosius. It was not long before the
omnium, Veni redemptor gentium, and lux vigour and ability of Theodosius triumphed
beata Trinitas. They have a brightness and over Maximus, who perished in the conflict
felicity which have reasonably made them he had provoked. Ambrose, who withdrew
favourites in the church to the present day. from Milan when Maximus came to occupy it,
We must take into account the state of appears to have been near Theodosius in the
mind brought about in the bishop and his hour of victory, and used his influence with
flock by that protracted vigil in the basilica, him in favour of moderation and clemency,
when we read of the miracles into which their which the emperor, according to his usual
triumph over heresy blazed forth. We have habit, displayed in an eminent degree (Ep. xl.
20 AMBROSIUS AMBROSIUS
32). But Ambrosie unhappily prevailed upon Ambrose ,urges his Emperor to a genuine
Theodosius to abandon a course which his repentance for the dreadful deed to which
stricter sense of his duty as a ruler had in an access of passion he had given his
prompted him to take. In some obscure place sanction. He intimates that he could not
in the East the Christians had been guilty of celebrate the Eucharist in the presence of one
outrages, from which it had often been their so stained with blood. Gibbon represents
lot to suffer. With the support of their bishop, the behaviour of Ambrose as marked by a
they had demolished a Jewish synagogue and prelatical pomposity, of which there is no
a meeting-house of certain Gnostic heretics. trace whatever in the only documents on
Theodosius, hearing of this violence, had which we can rely. In his own letter the
ordered that the bishop should rebuild the bishop is most considerate and tender, though
synagogue at his own expense, and that the evidently resolute. He and Paulinus record
rioters, who were chiefly monks, should be simply that the emperor performed public
punished at the discretion of the local gover- penance, stripping himself of his royal insignia,
nor. This order naturally affronted the party and praying for pardon with groans and tears ;

spirit of the Christians. Ambrose could not and that he never passed a day afterwards
bear that his feilow-believers should be thus without grieving for his error (Paulinus, 24 ;

humiliated. He wrote a letter to the em- Amb. de Ob. Theod. 34).


peror (who was at Milan, Ambrose being for In the course of the following year (391),
the moment at Aquileia\ entreating him most Theodosius having returned to the East, the
earnestly to revoke the order. With much weak authority of Valentinian II. was over-
that Ambrose says we can sympathize but he; thrown by Arbogastes and his puppet
lays down a principle fruitful in disastrous Eugenius, and the unfortunate youth perished
issues : Cedat oportet censura (the functions of by the same fate as his brother. He was in
the civil ruler) devotioni (Ep. xl. 11). Shortly Gaul at the time of his death, and Ambrose
after, he had the opportunity of preaching be- was at that moment crossing the Alps to visft
fore the emperor at Milan. In a letter to his him there, partly by the desire of the Italian
sister he gives the sermon at length, with its magistrates, who wished Valentinian to return
conclusion, addressed directly to the emperor, to Italy, and partly at the request of the
and begging of him the pardon of those who emperor himself, who was anxious to be
had been caught in a sin. When he came baptized by him. In the next year (392) a
down from the pulpit, Theodosius said to him, funeral oration was delivered at Milan by
De nobis proposuisti. " Only with a view to Ambrose {de Obitu Valentiniani), in which he
your advantage," replied Ambrose. " In praises the piety as well as the many virtues
truth," continued the emperor, " the order of the departed. It appears that under the
that the bishop should rebuild the synagogue influence of Theodosius, Valentinian had
was too hard. But that is amended. The learnt to regard Ambrose with the same
monks commit many crimes." Then he re- reverence as his brother had done before him
mained silent for a while. At last Ambrose (Letter to Theodosius, Ep. liii. 2). He had
said, " me to offer the sacrifice for thee
Enable died unbaptized ; but Ambrose assures his
with a clear conscience." The emperor sat sorrowing sisters that his desire was equivalent
down and nodded, but Ambrose would not be to the act of baptism, and that he had been
satisfied without extracting a solemn engage- washed in his piety as the martyrs in their
ment that no further proceedings should be blood {de Ob. Val. 51-53)-
taken in the matter. After this he went up Eugenius held the sovereign power in the
to the altar " but I should not have gone,"
; West for two or three years, and made friendly
adds Ambrose, " unless he had given me his overtures to the great Italian prelate. But
full promise" {Ep. xli. 28). Ambrose for a time returned no answer and ;

About two years later (a.d. 390) the lament- when Eugenius came to Milan, he retired from
able massacre at Thessalonica gave occasion that city- Shortly after this withdrawal, he
for a very grand act of spiritual discipline. The wrote a respectful letter to Eugenius, explain-
commander of the garrison at Thessalonica and ing that the reason why he had refused to hold
several of his officers had been brutally intercourse with him was that he had given
murdered by a mob in that city. The indigna- permission, though himself a Christian, that
tion of the emperor was extreme ; and after the altar of Victory should be restored the—
appearing to yield to gentler counsels, he sent boon which Svmmachus had begged for in
orders, which were executed by an indis- vain being yielded to the power of Arbogastes.
criminate slaughter of at least 7,000 persons When tlie military genius and vigour of
in Thessalonica. Ambrose protested against Theodosius had gained one more brilUant
this in the name of God and of the church. triumph by the rapid overthrow of Arbogastes
He had always acted on the principle that and Eugenius, Ambrose, who had returned
" nothing was more dangerous before God or to Milan (Aug. a.d. 394), received there a
base amongst men than for a priest not to letter from Theodosius requesting him to offer
speak out his convictions freely," and his lofty a public thanksgiving for his victory. Ambrose
disinterestedness (non pro meis commodis replies {Ep. Ixi.) with enthusiastic congratula-
faciebam, Ep. Ivii. 4) gave him great power tions. But the happiness thus secured did not
over a religious and magu.tnimous mind like last long. In the following year the great Theo-
that of Theodosius. Ambrose now wrote dosius died at Milan (Jan. 395), asking for
him a letter (Ep. li.), which Gibbon most Ambrose with his last breath {de Obitu Theod.
unjustly calls " a miserable rhapsody on a 35^ The bishop had the satisfaction of paying
noble subject," but which most readers will a cordial tribute to his memory in the funeral
feel to be worthy of its high purpose. With oration he delivered over his remains.
many protestations of respect and sympathy Ambrose himself had only two more years

AMBROSIUS AMBROSIUS 21

to live. The time was filled with busj' labours crated elements in a napkin round his neck
of exposition, correspondence, and episcopal when he was shipwrecked, and adds, that
government and, according to Paulinus, with
;
having found the benefit of " the heavenly
mystery " in this form, he was eager to receive
various prodigies. Unhappily this biographer
spoils with his childish miracles what is still a it into his mouth

" quam majus putabat
touching account of the good bishop's death. fusum in viscera, quod tantum sibi tectum
It became known that his strength was failing, orario profuisset " (de Exc. Sat. 43, 46).
! He
and the count Stilicho, saying that the death argues for the daily reception of the Eucharist
of such a man threatened death to Italy itself, from the prayer, Give us this day our daily
induced a number of the chief men of the bread {de Sacr. v. 25). His frequent strong
city to go to him, and entreat him to pray to recommendations of virginity are based, not
God that his life might be spared. Ambrose on a theory of self-denial, but rather on one
replied, " I have not so lived amongst you, of detachment from the cares of the world and
that I should be ashamed to live and I do
;
the troubles inseparable from matrimony and
not fear to die, because we have a good parentage. According to him. marriage is
Lord." * For some hours before his death the more painful state, as well as the less
he lay with his hands crossed, praying as
; favourable to spiritual devotion. Neverthe-
Paulinus could see by the movement of his less, he did not expect or desire a large number
lips, though he heard no voice. When the to embrace the life which he so highly eulo-
last moment was at hand, Honoratus, the gized. " Dicet aliquis Ergo dissuades:

bp. of Vercellae, who was lying down in nuptias ? ego vero suadeo, et eos damno qui
another room, thought he heard himself thrice dissuadere consuerunt. . . . Paucaruni quippe
called, and came to Ambrose, and offered hoc munus [virginity] est, illud omnium " {de
him the Body of the Lord immediately after
; Virginihus, I. vii.). He and his sister used to
receiving which he breathed his last breath
a man, Paulinus says well, who for the fear
press Satyrus to marry, but Satyrus put it
off through family affection " ne a fratribus

of God had never feared to speak the truth divelleretur " {de Exc. Sat. §§ 53, 59). Fast-
to kings or any powers. He died on Good ing is commended, not as self-torture pleasing
Friday night, 397, and was buried in the to God, but as the means of making the body
Ambrosian Basilica, in the presence of a more wholesome and stronger. A keen sense
multitude of every rank and age, including of the restraints and temptations and annoy-
even Jews and pagans. ances which reside in the flesh is expressed
By the weight of his character St. Ambrose in Ambrose's remarkable language concerning
gave a powerful support to the tendencies death. It is a great point with him that
which he favoured. He held without mis- death is altogether to be desired. He argues
givings that the church was the organ of God this point very fully in the address de Fide
in the world, and that secular government had Resurrectionis and in the essay de Bono
the choice of being either hostile or subser- Mortis. There are three kinds of death, he
vient to the Divine authority ruling in the —
says the death of sin, death to sin, and the
church. To passages already quoted which death of the body {de B. M. § 3). This last is
express this conviction may be added a remark the emancipation of the soul from the body.
let fall by Ambrose at the council of Aquileia, He appeals to the arguments of philosophers
" Sacerdotes de laicis judicare debent, non and to the analogies of nature, as well as to
laici de sacerdotibus " [Gesta Cohc. Aqu. 51). Scripture, to shew not only that such a deliver-
He was of strict Athanasian orthodoxy as ance may be hoped for, but that it must be a
against heresy of every colour. His views of thing to be desired bj^all. The terrors of the
the work of Christ in the Incarnation, the future state almost entirely disappear. He
Passion, and the Resurrection, have in a admits now and then that punishment must be
marked degree the broad and universal looked for by the wicked but he affirms that ;

character which belongs to the higher pat- even to the wicked death is a gain {de B. M.
ristic theology on this subject. (For example, § 28). There are two reasons why the foolish
speaking of the resurrection of Christ, he says, fear death one because they regard it as
:

" Resurrexit in eo mundus, resurrexit in eo destruction " altera, quod poenas reformi-
;

coelum, resurrexit in eo terra," de Fide Res. dent, poetarum scilicet fabulis territi, latratus
102.) With regard to religion and religious Cerberi, et Cocyti fluminis tristem voraginem,
practices, he is emphatic in insisting that the etc.
etc., Haec plena sunt fabularum, nee
worship of the heart is all-important (" Deo tamen negaverim poenas esse post mortem "
enim velle pro facto est," de Fide Res. 115 {ib. 33). " Qui infideles sunt, descendunt in
;

" Deus non sanguine sed pietate placatur," infernum viventes etsi nobiscum videntur
;

ib. 98;
" Non pecuniam Deus sed fidem vivere sed in inferno sunt " {ib. 56).
quaerit," de Poen. ii. ix.) but at the same time
; The see of Milan was in no way dependent
his language concerning the two Sacraments upon that of Rome but Ambrose alwaj's
;

is often undeniably that of materializing theo- delighted to pay respect to the bp. of Rome,
logy. Attempts have been made, chiefly on this as representing more than anj' other the unity
account, to call in question the Ambrosian of the church. His feeling towards Rome
authorship of the treatises de Mysteriis and is expressed in the apology with which he
de Sacramentis but their expressions are defends the custom of washing the feet in

;

supported by others to be found in undoubted baptism a custom which prevailed at Milan


works of Ambrose. He praises his brother but not at Rome. " In omnibus cupio sequi
Satyrus for having tied a portion of the conse- Ecclesiam Romanam sed tamen et nos;

• St. Augustine was wont to express his peculiar homines sensum habemus ideo quod alibi ;

admiration of this saying, with its elimata ac librata rectius servatur, et nos rectius custodimus.
verba (Possidius, Vit. Aug. c. xxvii.). Ipsum sequimur apostolum Petrum, . . . qui
22 AMBROSIUS AMMONIUS
sacredos fuit Ecclesiae Romanae " {de Sacra- one,mentioned with high praise by St.
mentis, III. §§ 5, 6). Augustine (Ep. xxxi. 8), against those who
As a writer, St. Ambrose left a multitude alleged that our Lord had learnt from Plato.
of works behind him, which show competent Of the connexion of St. Ambrose with the
learning, a famihar acquaintance with Plato, liturgical arrangement which bears his name,
Cicero, Vergil, and other classics, and much we know nothing more than what has been
intellectual liveliness and industry. Their quoted above from Paulinus. [See D. C. A.,
want of originality did not hinder them from arts. Liturgies Ambrosian Music]
;

obtaining for their author, through their There are three principal editions of Am-
popular and practical qualities, a distinguished brose's works —
that of Erasmus, the Roman,
reputation as a sound and edifying teacher. and the Benedictine. Erasmus's ed. was pub.
He is often mentioned with respect by his at Basle, by Froben, in 1527. He divided the
contemporaries, St. Jerome and St. Augustine works into four tomes, with the titles, (i)
(see especially the latter, de Doctrind Chris- Ethica, (2) Polemica, (3) Orationes, Epislolae.
tiana, iv. 46, 48, 50). He came to be joined et Condones, (4) Explanationes Vet. et Novi
with them and Gregory the Great as one of Testamenti. The great Roman edition was
the four Latin doctors of the church. His the work of many years' labour, undertaken
writings may be classified under three heads, by the desire of popes Pius IV. and Pius V.,
as (i) Expository, (2) Doctrinal or Didactic, and begun by a monk who afterwards became
and (3) Occasional. pope with the name of Sixtus V. It was pub.
(i) The first class contains a long list of in 5 vols, at Rome, in the years 1580-1-2-5.
expositions, delivered first as sermons, of This edition superseded all others, until the
many books of Scripture. They begin with publication of the excellent work of the Bene-
the Hexaemeron, or commentary on the dictines (du Frische and Le Nourry) at Paris,
Creation. Of this work St. Jerome says, A.D. 1686 and 1690. A small revised ed. oi
" Nuper S. Ambrosius sic Hexaemeron illius the de Officiis and the Hexaemeron has been
[Origenus] compilavit, ut magis Hippolyti printed in the Bibliotheca Pat. Feci. Latin.
sententias Basiliique sequeretur" {Ep. 41). It Selecta (Tauchnitz, Leipz.). Some of his works
is in a great part a literal translation from are reprinted in the Vienna Corpus Ser. Feci.
St. Basil. St. Augustine was interested by the Lat. and in the loth vol. of the Nic. and Post-
;

method of interpretation in which Ambrose Nic. Fathers are English trans, of select works.
followed Basil, Origen, and Philo Judaeus, An elaborate Life of St. Ambrose by Baronius,
finding a spiritual or mystical meaning latent extracted from his Annates, is prefixed to the
under the natural or historical. The Hexae- Roman edition but improved upon by the
;

meron (6 books) is followed by de Paradiso, more critical investigations of the Benedictine


de Cain et Abel (2), de Noe ct Area, de editors, who have laid the basis for all sub-
Abraham (2), de Isaac et Animd, de Bono sequent Lives. (Cf. Th. Forshaw, Ambrose, Bp.
Mortis, de Fugd Saeculi, de Jacob et Beatd of Milan, 1884 ;a Life hy the due de Broglie
Vita (2), de Joseph Patriarchd, de B enediction- in Lcs Saints, 1899 (Paris). A cheap popular
ibus Patriarcharuin, de Elid ct Jejunio, de Life by R. Thornton is pub. by S.P.C.K. in
Nabuthe Jezraelitd, de Tobid, de Interpella- their Fathers for Eng. Readers.) [j.ll.d.]
tione Job et David (4^, Apologia Prophetae Ammon (or Amon), St., the founder of the
David, Apol. altera ib., Enarrationes in Psalmos celebrated settlement of cf)enobites and her-
(12), Expositio in Ps. cxviii., Expositio Evang. mits on and near Mons Nitria (Ruf. de Mon.
secundum Lucam (10). 30) ;he is often styled the " father of Egyp-
(2) The second class contains de Officiis tian monasticism." He was contemporary
Ministrorum (3 books), de Virginibus (3), de with St. Anthony, and filled the same place in
Viduis, de Virginitate, Exhortatio Virginitatis, Lower Egypt as Anthony in the Thebaid.
de Lapsu Virginis Consecratae, de Mysteriis, Being left an orphan by his parents, wealthy
de Sacramentis (6), de Poenitentid (2), de people near Alexandria, he was forced by his
Fide (5), de Spiritu Sancto (3), de Incarna- uncle to marry. But on the wedding day he
tionis Dominicae Sacramento. Of these the persuaded his bride to take a vow of celibacy,
books de Officiis, addressed to the clergy and for eighteen years they lived together as
(imitated from Cicero), and those de Fide, brother and sister afterwards with her con-
:

mentioned above, are the most important. sent he withdrew to Nitria, and from that time
(3) The occasional writings, which are only visited his wife twice a year (Pall. Hist.
biographically the most valuable, are the dis- Laus. 8). A great multitude of zealous dis-
courses de Excessu Fratris sui Satyri (2), de ciples soon gathered round him ; so that
Obitu V alentiniani Consolatio, de Obitu Theo- Palladius not many years later found about
dosii Oratio, and the Epistles, ninety-one in five thousand monks, some living quite alone,
number, with the Gesta Concilii Aqtiilciensis some with one or more companions ; while
inserted amongst them. six hundred " advanced in holiness " [reKeloi)
Various ecclesiastical writings have been dwelt apart from the rest in more complete
attributed to Ambrose, which critical exami- isolation (ib.). Several miracles are related of
nation has determined to be spurious. [Am- Ammon (Socr. Hist. iv. 23 Soz. Hist. i. 14
; ;

BROSIASTER.] Most of these are given in the Niceph. Hist. viii. 41). [i.g.s.]
Benedictine edition ; in that of Migne there Ammonius, a disciple of Pambo, and one of
is an additional appendix, containing some the most celebrated of the monks of Nitria.
other compositions which have borne Am- Being of unusual stature, he and his brothers
brose's name, but are either manifestly DioscoRUS, Eusebius, and Euthymius were
spurious or have no sufficient title to be called the Tall Brothers (Soz. Hist. viii. 12).
considered genuine. Some of his genuine Ammonius himself was distinguished by the
works appear to have been lost, especially epithet napwr-qs (Niceph. Hist. xi. 37), in
;

AMMONIUS SACCAS AMPHILOCHIUS 23


consequence of having cut off one of his ears reconcile the philosophies of Plato and Aris-
to escape being made a bishop (Pall. Hist. totle, hence he appears to have combined
Laus. 12). In his youth he accompanied St. mysticism and eclecticism. Nemesius, a
Athanasius to Rome (Socr. Hist. iv. 23 Pall.; bishop and a neo-Platonist of the close of the
12). He was a learned man, and could 4th cent., cites two passages, one of which he
repeat, it is said, the O. and N. T. by heart, declares to contain the views of Numenius
as well as passages from Origen and other and Ammonius, the other he attributes to
Fathers (Pall. 12). He was banished to Dio- Ammonius alone. They concern the nature
caesarea in the persecution under Valens (ib. of the soul and its relation to the body but;

117). After being for some time high in they appear to have been merely the tradi-
favoiu: with Theophilus of Alexandria, he and tional views of Ammonius, not any actual
his brothers were accused by him of Origenism. written words of his. The life and philosophy
Sozoraen (viii. 12) and Nicephorus (xiii. 10) of Ammonius have been discussed by Vache-
ascribe the accusation to personal animosity rot. Hist, de I'Ecole d'Alex. i. 342 Jules
;

on the part of Theophilus. Socrates (vi. 7) Simon, Hist, de I'Ecole d'Alex. i. 204 Dehaut
;

explains the accusation as an attempt to divert in his historical essay on the life and teaching
from himself the odium which he had incurred of our philosopher; and Zeller in his Philo-
as an Origenist. Jerome considers the ac- sophie der Griechen, who also mentions other
cusation merited {Ep. ad Alex.). Driven from writers on Ammonius. [j.r.m.]
Egypt, the brothers took refuge first in Pales- Amphilochius (1), archbp. of Iconium. Of
tine (Niceph. xiii. 11) and afterwards at Con- this great Catholic leader, who was regarded
stantinople, where they were well received by his contemporaries as the foremost man
by Chrysostom (viii. 13). There they were in the Eastern church after his friends Basil
protected also by the favour of the Empress of Caesarea and Gregory of Nazianzus, very
Eudoxia (Soz. viii. 13), and even satisfied scanty information remains. The works
Epiphanius of Salamis, who came to Constan- ascribed to him are mostly spurious and the
;

tinople at the instigation of Theophilus to Life (Migne, Patr. Gk. xxxix. p. 14) is a later
convict them of heresy (viii. 15). At the fiction. Various references to the writings
synod " ad Quercum," held on the arrival of of Basil and Gregory contain nearly all that
Theophilus, they were persuaded to submit is known of him and his family. Amphilochius
to him, Ammonius being ill at the time. appears to have been a first cousin of Gregory
He died shortly afterwards. Perhaps this Nazianzen. The language of Basil [Ep. 161)
Ammonius is the author of the Institutiones might imply that he was born and lived in
Asceticae, of which 22 chapters are extant Basil's own town Caesarea. Gregory ex-
(Lambec. Biblioth. Vindoh. iv. 155). [i.G.s.] presses regret that he did not see much of
Ammonius Saccas. Next to nothing is Amphilochius during his earlier years (Ep. 13).
known of this philosopher. That he obtained Their intimate friendship commenced at a
his name of Saccas (= ffaKKOcpopos) from having later date. Amphilochius, like many other
been a porter in his youth is affirmed by eminent Christian fathers, was educated for
Suidas (under Origenes) and Ammianus Mar- the bar. The letters of his cousin imply that
cellinus (xxii. 528). He was a native of he carried on his profession at Constantinople.
Alexandria ; Porphyry asserts that he was It is not improbable that trouble in regard
born of Christian parents, and returned to to money matters about 369 weaned Amphi-
the heathen religion. Eusebius [H. E. vi. lochius from his worldly pursuits and turned
19, 7) denies this, but perhaps confounds his thoughts inward. He had abandoned his
him with another Ammonius, the author of a profession, and was then living in retirement
Diatessaron, still extant. That the founder of at Ozizala, devoting himself apparently to
the Alexandrian school of philosophy (for religious exercises and to the care of his aged
such Ammonius Saccas was) should have been father. His cousin Gregory appears to have
at the same time a Christian, though not been mainly instrumental in bringing about
impossible, seems hardly likely. Moreover, this change. At least he says with honest
*
the Ammonius of Eusebius wrote books pride, that " together with the pure Thecla"
whereas, according to both Longinus and he has " sent Amphilochius to God " [Op. ii.
Porphyry, Ammonius Saccas wrote none. p. 1068). And now his closer friendship with
Plotinus is said to have been most strongly Basil and Gregory begins. Ozizala was situ-
impressed with his first hearing of Ammonius, ated not far from Nazianzus, for Gregory's
and to have cried out, " This is the man I was correspondence impUes that they were near
looking for!" {tovtov i^rirovv), after which he neighbours. A letter of Basil, apparently
remained his constant friend till the death of belonging to this period, is in the name of one
the elder philosopher. Among other disciples Heraclidas, who, like Amphilochius, had re-
of Ammonius were Herennius, the celebrated nounced the profession of the bar and devoted
Longinus, Heracles the Christian, Olympius, himself to a reUgious life. Heraclidas, lodged
Antonius, a heathen called Origen, and also in a large hospital (TrrcoxoTpot/^eroc) recently
the famous Christian of that name. It is erected by Basil near Caesarea, and enjoying
possible, however, that the Christians, Origen the constant instructions of the bishop, urges
and Heracles, may have been the disciples of Amphilochius to obtain leave from his father
that Ammonius whom Eusebius confounds to visit Caesarea and profit by the teachmg
with Ammonius Saccas, and who was himself and example of the same instructor [Ep. 150).
a Christian ;but this cannot be certainly This letter was written in the year 372 or 373
known. We may guess something concerning (see Garnier's Basil. Op. iii. p. cxxxiv.). The
the philosophy of Ammonius Saccas from the * This seems to be the same Thecla with whom
fact that Plotinus was his pupil. Hierocles Gregory elsewhere corresponds, and not the monas-
lap. Photius) affirms that his aim was to tery of St. Thecla, whither Gregory retired.
24 AMPHILOCHIUS AMPHILOCHIUS
invitation to Caesarea appears to have been episcopate. During this sojourn at Constanti-
promptly accepted, and was fraught with nople he signs his name as first witness to
immediate consequences. It does not appear Gregory's will (Greg. Op. ii. p. 204), in which
that at that time Amphilochius was even the testator leaves directions to restore to
ordained ;
yet at the very beginning of the his most reverend son the bp. Amphilochius
year 374 we find him occupying the important the purchase-money of an estate at Canotala
see of Iconium. Amphilochius can hardly (ib. p. 203). It was probably on this occasion
have been then more than about 35 years of also that Amphilochius fell in with Jerome
age. A few months before Faustinus, bp. of and read to him a book which he had written
Iconium, had died, and the Iconians applied on the Holy Spirit (Hieron. de Vir. III. 133)
to the bp. of Caesarea to recommend them a as Jerome is known to have paid a visit to
successor (Basil. Ep. 138). It is impossible Gregory Nazianzen at this time (Hieron. Op.
not to connect this application to Basil with xi. 65 seq., ed. Vallarsi).
the ultimate appointment of Amphilochius. About two years later must be placed the
From this time forward till his death, about well-known incident in which the zeal of
five years afterwards, Basil holds close inter- Amphilochius against the Arians appears
course with Amphilochius, receiving from him (Theod. H. E. v. 16).* Obtaining an audience
frequent visits. The first took place soon of Theodosius, he saluted the emperor him-
after his consecration, about Easter 374, and self with the usual marks of respect, but paid
was somewhat protracted, his ministrations on no attention to his son Arcadius, who had
this occasion making a deep impression on the recently (cfcucrrt) been created Augustus and
people of Caesarea (Ep- 163, 176). was present at the interview. Theodosius,
It was probably in another visit in 374 (see indignant at this slight, demanded an ex-
Garnier, Op. iii. p. cxl.) that Amphilochius planation. " Sire," said the bishop, " any
urged Basil to clear up all doubt as to his disrespect shewn to your son arouses your-
doctrine of the Holy Spirit by writing a displeasure. Be assured, therefore, that the
treatise on the subject. This was the occasion Lord of the universe abhorreth those who are
of Basil's extant work, de Spiritu Sancto (see ungrateful towards His Son, their Saviour
§ i), which, when completed, was dedicated and Benefactor." The emperor, adds Theo-
to the petitioner himself and sent to him doret,immediately issued an edict prohibiting
engrossed on vellum {Ep. 231). During this the meetings of the heretics. As Arcadius
and the following year Basil likewise ad- was created Augustus in the beginning of the
dresses to Amphilochius his three Canonical year 383 (Clinton, Fast. Rom. i. p. 504), and
Letters (Ep. 188, 199, 217), to solve some as Theodosius issued his edict against the
questions relating to ecclesiastical order, which Eunomians, Arians, Macedonians, and Apol-
the bp. of Iconium had propounded to him. linarians in Sept. of that year (ib. p. 507),
At this same period also we find Amphilochius the date is accurately ascertained (see Tillem.
arranging the ecclesiastical affairs of Isauria Mim. eccl. vi. pp. 627 seq., 802). In 383
(Ep. 190), Lycaonia (Ep. 200), and Lycia also we find Amphilochius taking energetic
(Ep. 218), under the direction of Basil. He measures against heretics of a different stamp.
is also invited by Basil to assist in the adminis- He presided over a synod of 25 bishops
tration of his own diocese of Caesarea, which assembled at Sida in Pamphylia, in which the
has become too great a burden for him, Messalians were condemned, and his energy
prostrated as he now is by a succession of seems to have instigated the religious crusade
maladies (Ep. 200, 201). The affectionate which led to the extirpation of this heresy
confidence which the great man reposes in his (Photius, Bibl. 52; Theod. E. H. iv. 10 cf.
;

younger friend is a powerful testimony to the Labb. Cone. ii. 1209, ed. Coleti).
character and influence of Amphilochius. The date of Amphilochius's death is un-
After the death of Basil, the slender thread certain. When J erome wrote the work quoted
by which we trace the career of Amphilochius above, he was still living (a.d. 392) ; and
is taken up in the correspondence of Gregory. two years later (a.d. 394) his name occurs
Gregory writes with equal affection and among the bishops present at a synod held
esteem, and with more tenderness than Basil. at Constantinople, when the new basilica of
He has been ill, and he speaks of Amphilochius St. Peter and St. Paul was dedicated (Labb.
as having helped to work his cure. Sleeping Cone. ii. 1378, ed. Coleti). On the other hand,
and waking, he has him ever in his mind. He he is not mentioned in connexion with the
mentions the many letters which he has troubles of St. Chrysostora (a.d. 403 seq.) ;

received from Amphilochius (fivpiaKis ypdcpwv), and it is a fairly safe assumption that he was
and which have called forth harmonies from no longer living. Despite the martyrologies,
his soul, as the plectrum strikes music out of he probably died in middle Hfe. His day is
the lyre (Ep. 171). The last of Gregory's Nov. 23 in both Greek and Latin calendars.
letters to Amphilochius (Ep. 184) seems to The works ascribed to Amphilochius (/«wft»
have been written about the year 383. Not ad Seleucum, Homilies, etc.) seem to be mostly
long before (a.d. 381) Amphilochius had been spurious, with the exception of an Epistola
present with his friend at the council of Con- Synodica (Migne, p. 94), on the Macedonian
stantinople, and had subscribed to the creed heresy. Its object is to explain why the
there sanctioned, as chief pastor of the Nicene fathers did not dwell on the doctrine
Lycaonian church, at the head of twelve other of the Spirit, and to justify the ordinary form
bishops (Labb. Cone. ii. p. 1135, ed. Coleti).
• Sozomen (vii. 6) tells the story, but without the
At this council a metropohtan authority was
name of the bishop. He describes him as "an old
confirmed to, rather than conferred on, his see man, a priest of an obscure city, simple and in-
of Iconium ;for we find it occupying this experienced in affairs." This description is as
position even before his election to the unlike Amphiloohius as it could possibly be.
;

AMPHILOCHIUS ANASTASIUS I. 25

of the doxology. It is entitled 'A/xcfuyoxiv Latroeinium. But a few years later (a.d.
BatriXeios in one MS., but was certainly not 458), when the emperor Leo wrote to the
written by Basil, who indeed is mentioned bishops to elicit their opinions, Amphilochius
in it. stated, in reply, that, while he disapproved
Of his ability as a theologian and a writer the appointment of Timotheus Aelurus, he
the extant fragments are a wholly inadequate did not acknowledge the authority of the
criterion ; but his reputation with his con- council of Chalcedon (Evagr. H. E. ii. 10).
temporaries and with the later church leaves Yet, as if this were not enough, we are told
very little ground for doubt. His contem- that he shortly afterwards assented and
porary Jerome, an eminently competent judge, subscribed to its decrees (Eulogius in Phot.
speaks of the Cappadocian triad, Basil, Gre- Bibl. 230). [l.]
gory, and Amphilochius, as writers " who Anastasia. [Chrysogonus.]
cram [refarciunt] their books with the lessons (1), a presbyter of Antiocb, the
Anastasius
and sentences of the philosophers to such an confidential friend and counsellor of Nestorius,
extent that you cannot tell which you ought to the archbp. of Constantinople. Theophancs
admire most in them, their secular erudition or styles him the " syncellus," or confidential
their Scriptural knowledge" {Ep. 70, i. p. 429). secretary of Nestorius, who never took any
Of his character his intimate friends are the step without consulting him and being guided
best witnesses. The trust reposed in him by by his opinions. Nestorius having com-
Basil and Gregory appears throughout their menced a persecution against the Quarto-
correspondence. The former more especially decimans of Asia in 428, two presbyters,
praises his love of learning and patient in- Antonius and Jacobus, were dispatched to
vestigation, addressing him as his " brother carry his designs into effect. They were
Amphilochius, his dear friend most honoured furnished with letters commendatory from
of all " {de Spir. Sanct. § i); while the latter Anastasius and Photius, bearing witness to the
speaks of him as " the blameless high-priest, soundness of their faith. The two emissaries
the loud herald of truth, his pride " [Carm. ii. of the archbp. of Constantinople did not
p. 1068). He seems to have united the genial restrict themselves to their ostensible object,
sympathy which endears the friend, and the to set the Asiatics right as to the keeping of
administrative energy which constitutes the Easter, but endeavoured to tamper with their
ruler, with intellectual abilities and acquire- faith. At Philadelphia they persuaded some
ments of no mean order. [l.] simple-minded clergy to sign a creed of doubt-
Amphilochius (2), bp. of Sida in Pamphylia. ful orthodoxy, attributed to Theodore of
Like his more famous namesake of Iconium, Mopsuestia. This was strongly opposed by
he appears as an antagonist of the Messalians. Charisius, the oeconomus of the church, who
He was urged, as one of the Pamphylian charged Jacobus with unsoundness in the
metropolitans, to take measures against them faith. His opposition aroused the indignation
in encyclical letters written by two successive of Anastasius and Photius, who dispatched
bps. of Constantinople, Atticus and Sisinnius fresh letters, reasserting the orthodoxy of
(Phot. Bibl. 52), and seems to have prose- Jacobus, and requiring the deprivation of
cuted the matter with zeal. He brought for- Charisius (Labbe, Cone. iii. 1202 seq. Socr. ;

ward the subject at the council of Ephesus vii. 29).


(a.d. 431) in conjunction with Valerianus It was in a sermon preached by Anastasius
and in consequence of their representations at Constantinople that the fatal words were
the council confirmed the decrees of former uttered that destroyed the peace of the church
synods against these heretics (Labbe, Cone. for so many years. " Let no one call Mary
iii. 1331 seq., ed. Coleti). At this same QeorbKos. She was but a human being. It is
council we find him assenting to Cyril's impossible for God to be born of a human
letter, and subscribing in very strong language being." These words, eagerly caught up by
to the condemnation and deposition of Nes- the enemies of Nestorius, caused much excite-
torius (ib. pp. 1012, 1046, 1077, 1133). Hisment among clergy and laity, which was
conduct, later, was marked by great vacilla- greatly increased when the archbishop by
tion, if not insincerity. It is sometimes statedsupporting and defending Anastasius adopted
the " "
that he was present at Robbers' Synod the language as his own (.Socr. H. E. vii. 32 ;

(a.d. 449), and there committed himself to Evagr. H. E. i. 2). [Nestorius.] In 430,
the policy of Dioscorus and the heresy of when Cyril had sent a deputation to Constan-
Eutyches (Le Quien, Oriens Christ, i. 998) ; tinople with an address to the emperor, An-
but his name does not appear in the list of astasius seems to have attempted to bring
bishops assembled there (Labbe, Cone. iv. about an accommodation between him and
889 seq.). At the council of Chalcedon, how- Nestorius (Cyril, Ep. viii. Mercator, vol. ii.
;

ever (a.d. 451), he shewed great tenderness p. 49). We find him after the deposition of
for Dioscorus, and here his career of tergiver- Nestorius still maintaining his cause and ani-
sation began. He tried to defer the second mating his party at Constantinople (Lupus,
citation of Dioscorus (iv. 1260) ; and when Ep. 144)-
after three citations Dioscorus did not appear, Tillemont identifies him with the Anastasius
he consented to his condemnation, though who in 434 wrote to Helladius, bp. of Tarsus,
with evident reluctance (iv. 1310, 1337). At when he and the Oriental bishops were refusing
a later session, too, he subscribed his assent to to recognize Proclus as bp. of Constantinople,
the epistle of pope Leo (iv. 1358, 1366 ;and bearing witness to his orthodoxy, and urging
we find his name also appended to the canons them to receive him into communion (Baluz.
of the council (iv. 1715). Thus he committed § 144)- [E.V.]
himself fully to the principles of this council, Anastasius I., bp. of Rome, was consecrated
and to the reversal of the proceedings of A.D. 398 (" Honorio IV. et Eutychiano coss."
26 ANASTASIUS II. ANATOLIUS
Prosp. Aq. Chron.), and died in April, 402 Three of this name are mentioned by eccle-
(Anast. Bibl. vol. i. p. 62). According to siastical writers, among whom some confusion
Anastasius Bibliothecarius, he put an end to exists. Two were patriarchs of Antioch, and
an unseemly strife between the priests and it has been reasonably questioned whether
deacons of his church, by enacting that priests they were ever monks of Mount Sinai, and
as well as deacons should stand bowed (" curvi whether the title " Sinaita " has not been
starent ") at the reading of the Gospels. Jer- given to them from a confusion with the one
ome calls him a " vir insignis," taken from the who really was so, and who falls outside our
evil to come, i.e. dying before the sack of period (see Smith's D. C. B. in loc).
Rome by Goths, a.d. 410. One letter by (1) Bp. of Antioch, succeeded Domnus III.
Anastasius is extant. Rufinus wrote to him A.D. 559 (Clinton, Fasti Romani). He is
shortly after his consecration (not later than praised by Evagrius (H. E. iv. 40) for his
A.D. 400, Constant. Epp. Pont. Rom. p. 714) theological learning, strictness of life, and
to defend himself against the charge of com- well-balanced character. He resolutely op-
plicity in the heresy ascribed to Origen. posed Justinian's edict in favour oif the
Anastasius replied (see Constant. I.e.) in a Aphthartodocetae, and encouraged the mon-
tone which, dealing leniently with Rufinus, astic bodies of Syria against it, a.d. 563
explicitly condemned Origen. Nine other (Evagr. iv. 39, 40). Justinian threatened him
letters are referred to :

of Nola(Paul. Nol. Ep. 20).



(1-5) To Paulinus, bp. with deposition and exile, but his death in
(6) To Anysius. 565 hindered his design, which was carried
bp. of Thessalonica, giving him jurisdiction into effect by his nephew Justin II., a.d. 570.
over Illvria referred to by Innocent I., in his Fresh charges were brought against Anastasius
;

first letter (Constant.). (7) To Johannes, bp. of profuse expenditure of the funds of his see,
of Jerusalem. (8) To African bishops who and of intemperate language and action in
had sent him an embassy to complain of the reference to the consecration of John, bp. (Si
low state of their clergy. (9) Contra Rufinum, Alexandria, by John, bp. of Constantinople,
an epistle sent ad Orientem (Hieron. Apol. in the lifetime of the previous bp. Eutychius
lib. 3). [G.H.M.] (Evagr. V. i ; Valesius's notes, ib. ;Theoph.
Anastasius II., bp. of Rome, succeeded Chron. ; Clinton, Fast. Rom.). He was suc-
Gelasius I. in Nov. 496 (Clinton's Fasti ceeded by Gregory, on whose death, in the
Romani, pp. 536, 713). The month after his middle of 593 (Clinton), he was restored to his
accession Clovis was baptized, and the new episcopate. This was chiefly due to the in-
Pope wrote congratulating him on his conver- fluence of Gregory the Great with the emperor
sion. Anastasius has left a name of ill-odour Maurice andhissonTheodosius (Evagr. vi. 24 ;

in the Western church attributable to his Greg. Mag. Ep. i. 25, 27, Ind. ix.).
;
Gregory
having taken a different line from his pre- wrote him a congratulatory letter on his return
decessors with regard to the Eastern church. to Antioch (Ep. iv. 37; Ind. xiv.); and several
Felix III. had excommunicated Acacius of epistles of his are preserved relating to the
Constantinople, professedly on account of his claim the bp. of Constantinople was then
"
communicating with heretics, but really be- making to the title of " universal bishop
cause Zeno's Henoticon, which he had sanc- (Ep. iv. 36, Ind. xiii. vi. 24, 31, Ind. xv.).
;

tioned, gave the church of Constantinople a Anastasius defended the orthodox view of the
primacy in the East which the see of Rome Procession of the Holy Ghost (Baron. Annal.
could not tolerate. Gelasius I. had followed Eccl. 593V and died at the close of 598 (Clinton,
closely in the steps of Felix. But Anastasius, Fast. Rom.). Five sermons, " de Orthodoxa
in the year of his accession, sent two bishops, Fide," and five others, printed in a Latin
Germanus of Capua and Cresconius of Todi, version by Migne and others, are ascribed by
(Baronius) to Constantinople, with a proposal some to this Anastasius. Oudin, Dupin, and
that Acacius's name, instead of being expunged others refer them more probably to a later
from the roll of patriarchs of Constantinople Anastasius. For a catalogue and description
as Gelasius had proposed, should be left upon of the works assigned to him, either existing
the diptychs, and no more be said upon the or lost, see Fabricius, Bibl. Graec. vol. ix.
subject. This proposal, in the very spirit of pp. 332-336, and Migne.
the Henoticon, gave lasting offence to the (2) Followed the preceding as bp. of An-
Western church, and it excites no surprise tioch in the beginning of 599. A letter of
that he was charged with communicating Gregory the Great to him (Ep. vii. 48, Ind. ii.)
secretly with Photinus, a deacon of Thessa- acknowledges one announcing his appointment
lonica who held with Acacius and of wishing and declaring his adherence to the orthodox
;

to heal the breach between the East and West faith. Gregory had written to him before 597
— for so it seems best to interpret the words (Ep. vii. 3, Ind. i.), exhorting him to con-
Bibliothecarius
— stancy under the persecutions of heretics. He
of Anastasius " voluit revo-
care Acacium " (vol. i. p. 83). translated Gregory's de Curd Pastorali into
Anastasius died in Nov. 498. He was still Greek (ib. x. 22, Ind. v.). His death occurred
remembered as the traitor who would have in an insurrection of the Jews, Sept. 610
reversed the excommunication of Acacius ;
(Chnton, F. R.). Nicephorus (H. E. xviii.
and Dante finds him suffering in hell the 44) confounds him with (1). [e.v.]
punishment of one whom " Fotino " seduced Anatolius, bp. of Constantinople, 449 a.d.,
from the right way (Dante, Inf. xi. 8, 9). through the influence of Dioscorus of Alex-
Two epistles by him are extant one in- andria with Theodosius II., after the deposi-
:

forming the emperor Anastasius of his acces- tion of Flavian by the " Robber Council,"
sion (Mansi, viii. p. 188) the other to Clovis having previously been the " apocrisiarius " or
;

as above (ih. p. 193). [g.h.m.] representative of Dioscorus at Constantinople


Anastasius Sinaita (Mfaa-rdcrios l^ivairrit). (Zon. Ann. iii.). After his consecration, being
ANATOLIUS ANDREAS SAMOSATENSIS 27

under suspicion of Eutychianism (Leo, Epp. an Eng. trans, of his extant works see Ante-
ad. Theod. 33 ad Pulch. 35), he publicly con- Nicene Lib. (T. * T. Clark). [e.v.]
demned the heresies both of Eutyches and Ancyra, Seven Martyrs of, female victims
Nestorius, signing the letters of Cyril against of l3iocletian's persecution, 304. They were
Nestorius and of Leo against Eutyches (Leo, unmarried, about 70 years old, and notable
Epp. 40, 41, 48). In conjunction with Leo of for piety and good works. When the perse-
Rome, according to Zonaras (Ann. iii.), he cution was determined upon, Theotecnus, a
requested the emperor Marcian to summon a magician, a philosopher and pervert from
general council against Dioscorus and the Christianity, was dispatched as governor to
Eutychians but the imperial letter directing Galatia to root out Christianity.
;
Among
Anatolius to make preparations for the the earliest victims were the seven virgins,
council at Chalcedon speaks only of Leo Tecusa, Alexandra, Faina, Claudia, Euphrasia,
(Labbe, Cone. Max. Tom. iv.K In this council Matrona, JuUtta. Theotecnus called upon
Anatolius presided in conjunction with the them to offer incense, and upon their refusal
Roman legates (Labbe, Cone. Max. iv. Evagr. condemned them to the public brothel, from
;

H. E. ii. 4, 18 Niceph. H. E. xv. 18). By the which they escaped scatheless on account of
;

famous 28th canon, passed at the conclusion their age, and by the ingenuity of Tecusa their
of the council, equal dignity was ascribed to leader. He then ordered them to officiate as
Constantinople with Rome (Labbe, iv. 796 ;
priestesses of Diana and Minerva in washing
Evagr. ii. 18). Hence arose the controversy their statues according to the annual custom
between Anatolius and the Roman pontiff. of Ancyra. They were accordingly carried
Leo complained to Marcian [Ep. 54) and to naked through the streets to a neighbouring
Pulcheria {Ep. 55) that AnatoUus had out- lake, where garlands and white garments were
stepped his jurisdiction, by consecrating offered them in which to fulfil his commands.
Maximus to the see of Antioch ;and he re- Upon their refusal Theotecnus ordered them
monstrated with Anatolius (Ep. 53). After to be drowned in the lake, with heavy stones
the council of Chalcedon some Egyptian tied round their necks lest their bodies should
bishops wrote to Anatolius, earnestly asking be recovered and buried by their fellow-
his assistance against Timotheus, who was Christians. Many legends have gathered
usurping the episcopal throne at Alexandria round the story. The acts of the seven virgins
(Labbe, Cone. Max. iv. iii. 23, p. 897). Ana- and of St. Theodotus (a tavern-keeper of
tolius wrote strongly to the emperor Leo Ancyra martyred for rescuing and burying
against Timotheus (Labbe, iii. 26, p. 905). the bodies) are recorded in Gk. in a Vatican
The circular of the emperor requesting the MS., purporting to have been written by an
advice of Anatolius on the turbulent state eye-witness named Nilus. They are found in
of Alexandria is given by Evagrius (H. E. Gk. and Lat. in Boll. Aeta SS. May 18 ; cf.
ii. 9), and by Nicephorus (H. E. xv. 18). also Ruinart, Acta Sincera, p. 336 ;Ceillier,
The crowning of Leo on his accession by iii. 15. [G.T.S.]
Anatolius is said (Gibbon, iii. 313) to be the Andreas of Caesarea. [Arethas.]
first instance of the kind on record (Theoph. Andreas Samosatensis, bp. of Samosata at
Chron. 95 Par.). [i.g.s.] the time of the council of Ephesus, a.d. 431.
Anatolius, bp. of Laodicea in Syria Prima Sickness prevented his attending the council
(Eus. H. E. vii. 32). He had been famous at (Labbe, Cone. iii. 506), but he took a leading
Alexandria for proficiency in the liberal arts, part in the controversies between Cyril and
while his reputation for practical wisdom was the Oriental bishops that succeeded it. With-
so great that when the suburb of Brucheium out identifying himself with the erroneous
was besieged by the Romans during the revolt teaching ascribed to Nestorius, he shewed
of Aemilianus, a.d. 262, the command of the himself his zealous defender, and remained
place was assigned to him. Provisions having firm to him when his cause had been deserted
failed, and his proposition of making terms by almost all. For his zeal in the defence of
with the besiegers having been indignantly an heresiarch he is styled by Anastasius Sinaita
rejected, Anatolius obtained leave to relieve 6 opcLKow. The reputation of Andreas for
the garrison of all idle mouths, and by a clever learning and controversial skill caused John
deception marched out all the Christians, and of Antioch to select him, together with his
the greater part of the rest, many disguised as attached friend Theodoret, to answer Cyril's
women. Having passed over to Palestine, he anathemas against Nestorius (Labbe, iii. 1150 ;

was ordained by Theotecnus, bp. of Caesarea, Liberatus, c. iv. p. 16). Cyril replied and
as bishop-coadjutor, with the right of suc- wrote in defence of his anathemas, which
cession. But going to Antioch to attend the called forth a second treatise from Andreas
synod against Paul of Samosata, on his way (Labbe, iii. 827). In 453 Andreas accom-
through Laodicea, which had just lost its panied Alexander and Theodoret to the
bishop, his old friend Eusebius, he was de- council summoned at Antioch by Aristolaus
tained and made bishop in his room, a.d. the tribune, in compliance with the commands
269. of Theodosius, to consult how the breach with
Eusebius speaks of him as not having Cyril might be healed (ib. 764). On the
written much, but enough to show at once amicable reception by Acacius and John of
his eloquence and manifold learning. He Cyril's letter written in answer to the rescript
specially mentions a work on the Paschal of this council, Andreas fully sympathized
question, published in a Latin version by with his aged metropolitan Alexander's dis-
Bucherius (Doct. Temp., Antv. 1634). Some tress and indignation. Andreas deplored the
fragments of his mathematical works were recognition of Cyril's orthodoxy by so many
pub. at Paris, 1543, and by Fabricius (Bibl. bishops, and desired to bury himself in some
Graec. iii. 462 Hieron. Sc. Eccl. c. 73). For solitude where he might weep (ib. 784, 785,
;
28 ANICETUS ANTHROPOMORPHITAE
796, 797). This was before he had see them, (i) When the civil province of Cap-
Cyril's letter. On perusing Cyril's own state- padocia was divided and Tyana became the
ment his opinions changed. What Cyril had capital of the second division, Anthimus, in-
written was orthodox. No prejudice against sisting that the ecclesiastical arrangements
him ought to prevent his acknowledging it. should follow the civil, claimed metropolitan
The peace of the church was superior to all rights over several of Basil's suffragans.
private feelings. His alteration of sentiments Herein he was assisted by the disaffection
exasperated Alexander, who refused to see or which prevailed in Basil's province. He was
speak to his former friend {ib. 810, 811). even bold enough to attack Basil on a journey,
Andreas deeply felt this alienation of one he so and plunder a train of mules laden with sup-
much venerated, but it could not lead him to plies of money and provisions for the bp. of
retrace his steps. He used his utmost en- Caesarea. Basil, thinking to establish an
deavours in vain to persuade Alexander to invincible outpost against his aggressive an-
attend the council at Zeugma, which acknow- tagonist, consecrated his friend Gregory bp.
ledged the orthodoxy of Cyril's letter {ib. 805). of Sasima, a town not far from Tyana and one
His death must have occurred before 451, over which Anthimus claimed metropolitan
wlien Rufinus was bp. of Samosata. Theo- rights. So long as Gregory remained there,
doret speaks of Andreas with much affection he staunchly resisted alike the enticements
and esteem, praising his humility and readi- and the menaces of Anthimus but he soon
;

ness to help the distressed (Theod. Ep. xxiv. resigned the see which he had unwillingly
p. 918). His own letters give us a high idea of occupied. [Gregory Nazianzen.] A peace
his sound, practical wisdom, readiness to con- was patched up between Basil and Anthimus,
fess an error, and firmness in maintaining what apparently by the intercession of Gregory.
he believed right. [e-v.] This happened in the year 372 (Greg. Naz.
Anicetus, bp. of Rome, stated in Eusebius's Or. xHii. i. pp. 813 seq. ;Ep. 47, 48, 49, 50, ii.
History (iv. 11) and by Irenaeus {Adv. omn. pp. 42 seq. Carm. ii. pp. 696 seq.). (2) A
;

Haer. iii. 3, 3) to have succeeded Pius. As to certain Faustus had apphed to Basil to con-"
the date of his pontificate, see Lightfoot's secrate him to an Armenian see but as he
;

elaborate discussion in Apost. Fathers (part i. did not produce the proper authority, the
vol. i. pp. 201-345). As Polycarp visited him consecration was deferred. Faustus imme-
at Rome, and as Polycarp's death has been diately applied to Anthimus, who at once
fixed by recent criticism in 155, Li^htfoot says complied with his request, thus setting
that "the latest possible date for the accession canonical rules at defiance (Basil, Ep. 120,
of Anicetus is 154," and if he sat for eleven 121, 122). A reconciliation, however, seems
years, as is said, his death would be in 165. to have been effected, as Basil afterwards
Anastasius Bibliothecarius singles him out as spoke of Anthimus in very friendly terms
the pope who prescribed the tonsure for the {Ep. 210, rbv 6f.i6^pvxov iifj.Qv). Except in
clergy (Anast. vol. i. p. 13) and a forged connexion with Basil and Gregory, nothing is
;

letter upon this subject is given by Isidorus known of this prelate. (See Tillemont, Man.
Mercator (Constant, p. 75). But the single re- eccl. ix. pp. 174 seq., 196 seq. Gamier, Vit.
;

liable fact recorded of him has reference to the Bas. Op. iii. pp. cxi. seq., pp. cxxiii. seq.) [l.]
early Paschal controversy (Eus. H. E. iv. 24). Anthropolatrae (kvUpwirbXaTpai), a nick-
He, like his four predecessors, did not allow name given by the Apollinarians (c. a.d. 371)
the Jewish or Quartodeciman usage within to the Cathohcs, on the assumption that the
"
their own church, but communicated as freely union of " perfect God " with " perfect Man
as before with other churches which did allow necessarily involved two Persons in Christ,
it. Polycarp visited Rome, hoping to per- and therefore that the Catholic exposition of
suade Anicetus to adopt the Quartodeciman the doctrine implied the worship of a man:
practice. But Anicetus was firm, even against an inference assumed to be avoided by the
the age and saintliness of Polycarp. As a special Apollinarian dogma. See Apollin-
mark of personal respect, he allowed him to ARis (the Younger). The nickname in ques-
celebrate the Eucharist in Rome but they tion is mentioned by St. Greg. Naz. Oral. Ii.,
;

parted without agreement, though with mutual who retorts that in truth, if any one is to be
cordiaUty. We are told that Anicetus was called by a name of the kind, the Apollinarian
buried in the Calixtine cemetery on April ought to be called " oapKo\dTpr;s." [a.w.h.]
20. [g.h.m.] Anthropomorphitae {A nthropomorphism),
Anomoeans (from av6fxoios. dissimilar), one man, and iJ-op<t>r), form).
(i!t!'6?pw7ros, Terms
of the appellations of the radical Arians who, apphed to those who ascribe to God human
in opposition to the Athanasian or Nicene shape and form. We must distinguish two
doctrine of the consubstantiality {bixoovala) kinds of anthropomorphism, a doctrinal and
and the semi-Arian view of the likeness a symbolical. The former is heretical, the
(n^wiovaia) of the Son to the Father, taught latter Scriptural, and necessarily arises from
that the Son was dissimilar, and of a different the imperfection of human language and
substance {eTepoovcrios). [Arianism.]
human knowledge of God. The one takes the
[p.s.]
Scripture passages which speak of God's arm,
Anonomastus (Iren. 56 cf. 54). [Valen- hand,
:

eye, ear, mouth, etc., hterally the


TiNus ; Epiphanes.] [h.]
;

other understands and uses them figuratively.


Anthimus, bp. of Tyana, a contemporary Anthropomorphism
is always connected with
of St. Basil bp. of Caesarea in Cappodocia
anthropopathism (from SvOpuiros and wdOos,
(Basil. Ep. 58). In 372 he joined in sub- passion), which
ascribes to God human pas-
scribing a circular letter addressed by the sions and affections,
such as wrath, anger,
Oriental bishops to those of Italy and Gaul envy, jealousy, pity,
repentance. The latter,
{Ep. 92). But dissensions broke out between however, does not necessarily imply
the
ANTIDIKOMARIANITAE ANTONINUS, PIUS 29

former. All forms of idolatry, especially an idolatrous festival in honour of the Virgin,
those of Greece and Rome, are essentially by taking certain cakes (voXXi'^ptSes) about in
anthropomorphic and anthropopathic. The chariots, and then solemnly offering them to her
classical divinities are in character simply and consuming them, in imitation of the Lord's
deified men and women. The Christian, Supper, or (more probably) of the pagan wor-
Jewish, and Mohammedan religions teach ship of Ceres. The reaction from this super-
that God is a Spirit, and thus elevate him stition led to the existence of the sect spoken
above the reach of materialistic and sensual of in this article, which, contemporaneously
conceptions and representations. But within with the controversy carried on by St. Jerome
the Christian church anthropomorphism ap- and by others against Helvidius and Bonosus,
peared from time to time as an isolated opinion the literary supporters of the hypothesis, was
or as the tenet of a party- Tertullian is often led to endeavour to cut away all pretence for
charged with it, because he ascribed to God the Collyridian superstition by adopting their
a body (Adv. Prax. c. 7 " Quis enim nega-
: view and so denying its very groundwork. The
bit, Deum corpus esse, etsi Deus spiritus est ? controversy itself is discussed in Smith's D. B.
Spiritus enim corpus sui generis in effigie "). (4 vols.1893) under Brothers and James, and
But he probably identified corporeality with in Murray's Illtis. B. D. (1908) under James.
substantiality, and hence he maintained that For its literary history, see under Helvidius,
everything real had a body of some kind (de Hieronymus. [a.w.h.]
Came Chr. c. ii " Omne quod est, corpus
: Antiochus (l),bp. of Ptolemais, c. a.d. 401.
est sui generis, nihil est incorporale, nisi quod To display his oratorical powers in a wider
non est "). The pseudo-Clementine Homilies field he left Ptolemais and settled at Con-
(xvii. 2 seq.) teach that God, in order to be stantinople, where his fine voice and appro-
an object of love, must be the highest beauty, priate action, together with the eloquent and
and consequently have a body, since there is perspicuous character of his discourses, soon
no beauty without form nor could we pray
; attracted large auditories, by whom, like his
to a God Who was mere spirit. (Cf. Baur, great contemporary John, he was surnamed
Vorlesungen iiber die Dogmengeschichte, vol. i. "The Golden-mouthed." Having amassed
p. 412.) In the middle of the 4th cent. considerable wealth, he returned to his de-
Audius, or Audaeus, of Syria, a bold censor serted see, where he employed his leisure in
of the luxury and vices of the clergy, and an composing a long treatise " against avarice."
irregularly consecrated bishop, founded a He took a zealous part in the proceedings
strictly ascetic sect, which were called Audians against Chrysostom, and is reckoned by Pall-
or Anthropomorphites, and maintained them- adius among his bitterest enemies. He died
selves, in spite of repeated persecution, till in the reign of Arcadius, before a.d. 408, and,
the close of the 5th cent. He started from according to Nicephorus, his end, like that of
a literal interpretation of Gen. i. 28, and all the enemies of Chrysostom, was miserable.
reasoned from the nature of man to the nature A homily on The Cure of the Blind Man is
of God, Whose image he was (Epiphanius, also mentioned. With the exception of a
Haer. 70 ; Theod. H. E. iv. 9 Walch, Kei-
; sentence quoted by Theodoret, Dial. 2, and a
zerhistorie, iii. 300). During the Origenistic longer fragment given in the Catena on St.
controversies towards the end of the 4th cent., John, xix. p. 443, his works have perished
anthropomorphism was held independently (Socr. vi. II ; Soz. viii. 10 ; Niceph. xiii. 26;
by many Egyptian monks in the Scetic desert, Ciennadius in Catalog. ; Pallad. Dialog, p. 49 ;

who, with Pachomius at their head, were the Fabr. Bibl. Gk. ix. 259). [e.v.]
most violent opponents of the spiritualistic Antipopes, claimants to the popedom in
theology of Origen, and were likewise called opposition to the lawful popes. There were
Anthropomorphites they felt the need of
; seven such during the first six centuries, some
material conceptions in their prayers and owing their elevation to the existence of con-
ascetic exercises. Theophilus of Alexandria, flicting parties at Rome, others intruded into
formerly an admirer of Origen, became his A
the see by the civil power. fuller account
bitter opponent, and expelled the Origenists of them, with the authorities, is given under
from Egypt, but nevertheless he rejected the their respective names — viz. Novatianus ;

Anthropomorphism of the anti-Origenistic Felix Ursinus (or Ursicinus) Eulalius


; ;
;

monks [Ep. Pastr. for 399). In the present Laurentius; Dioscorus; Vigilius.
century Anthropomorphism has been revived [J. Y.] B—
by the Mormons, who conceive God as an Antoninus, Pius, emperor, a.d. 138-161.
intelligent material being, with body, mem- The character of this prince as loving righteous-
bers, and passions, and unable to occupy two ness and mercy, choosing rather, in his own
distinct places at once. [p-S-] noble words, " to save the life of one citizen
Antidikomarianitae C XvnbLKoixapiaviTai = than to slay a thousand foes," shewed itself,
Adversaries of Mary Epiph. Haer. Ixxxix.). as in other things, so also in his treatment of
:

The name given to those in Arabia in the latter the Christians of the empire. Hadrian had
part of the 4th cent, who (in opposition to the checked the tendency to persecution by im-
KoXXiipcStdi'tSes) maintained the novel supposi- posing severe penalties on false accusers
tion advanced at that time by Bonosus of (Just. Mart. Apol. i. c. 68). In some way or
Sadica, and by Helvidius, that " our Lord's other, Antoninus was led to adopt a policy
brethren " were children borne by the Blessed which was even more favourable to them
Virgin to Joseph after our Lord's birth. The (Xiphilin. Epit. Dion. Cass, i, 70, p. ii73)-
controversy arose out of the then prevailing Mehto, writing his Apologia to Marcus Aure-
reverence for virginity, which in its extreme lius (Eus. H. E. iv. 26), speaks of edicts which
form had led certain women, originally from Antoninus had issued, forbidding any new and
Thrace, but dwelling in Arabia, to celebrate violent measures against the Christians. A
do ANTONiUS ANTONIUS
more memorable proof of his tolerance is were very rare Egypt, and none far from
in
found, if the document he genuine, in the the habitations men. Anthony retired by
of
decree addressed to the general assembly of degrees farther and farther from his native
the proconsular province of Asia, at a time village, fixing his abode first in a tomb,
when the Christian church was exposed to afterwards in a ruined castle near the Nile.
outrages of all kinds {trpos to kolvov rrji 'Acrias). Here he remained some 20 years, shut up for
It speaks in admiring terms of the innocence months at a time with only bread and water
of the Christians, declares the charges against (the bread of the country is said to be good for
them to be unproved, bids men admire the keeping), and issuing forth only to instruct
steadfastness and faith with which they met the multitudes who flocked to see and hear
the earthquakes and other calamities that him ; at other times communication was pre-
drove others to despair, ascribes the perse- vented by a huge stone at the entrance.
cution to the jealousy which men felt against During the persecution of Maximinus (a.d.
those who were truer worshippers of God 311), in which their bishop had fallen, he went
than themselves. Unfortunately, however, to comfort the Christians of Alexandria and
;

the weight of both textual and internal though the presence of monks at these trials
evidence preponderates against the genuine- was forbidden as encouraging the martyrs in
ness of the edict as it stands, but some their disobedience to the emperor's edict, he
modern authorities are disposed to regard persisted in appearing in court. When the
it as an interpolated form of a real edict storm had ceased he withdrew, though now
of similar character. See, e.g., Renan, an old man, to a more complete isolation than
L'Eglise Chretienne, p. 302. In any case ever, near the Red Sea and here, to save his
;

it is natural to connect the more lenient disciples the trouble of bringing him food, he
policy, which there is no doubt that made a small field of wheat, which he culti-
Antoninus adopted, with the memorable vated with his own hands, working also at
Apologia which Justin addressed to him. making mats. From time to time he re«
Confining ourselves to its bearing on the charac- visited his former disciples in the Thebaid,
ter of the emperor, we note (i) that there had always, however, declining to preside over a
been at least the threat of persecution even convent. About a.d. 335 he revisited Alex-
unto death (c. 68) ;(2) that it is written andria, at the urgent request of Athanasius, to
throughout in a tone of manifest respect as preach against the Arians (Theod. Hist. iv.
to men not unworthy of the epithets that were 27), and there was followed by crowds as
attached to their names (" Pius " to Anto- " the man of God." But he soon returned to
ninus, " philosopher " to Verissimus and the congenial seclusion of his cell, and there
Lucius) ;(3) that the mere fact of the dedi- died, at the great age of 105, in the presence
cation and, apparently, presentation of such of the two disciples, Amathas and Macarius,
an address implies a tolerance which had not who had ministered to his wants during the
been often found in preceding emperors ; (4) last 15 years. To them he bequeathed his
that even the forged document, if it be such, hair-shirt and the rest of his worldly goods,
;

shews a certain verisimihtude in the ascription liis two woollen tunics and the rough cloak

of such a document to him. See Champagny, on which he slept, to bp. Serapion and St.
Les Antonines (Paris), and Aubc, Hist, des Athanasius (Athan. Vit. St. Ant.).
Persccid. {Paris, 1875), pp. 297-341. [e.h.p.1 The fame of Anthony spread rapidly
AntoniUS, St. (Abbas), termed by yVthan- through Christendom and the effect of his
;

asius " the founder of asceticism " and his example in inducing Christians, especially in
life a " model for monks " (Praef. Vit. St. the East, to embrace the monastic life is
Ant.). We have a tolerably complete, but described by his biographers as incalculable.
probably interpolated, biography of him by In the next century he began to be venerated
Athanasius, derived in part from his own as a saint by the Greek church, and in the
recollections, in part from others who had ninth by the Latin. St. Jerome says he was
known him, as well as frequent mention of the author of seven Epistles to certain Eastern
him by the ecclesiastical historians and we monasteries, which have been translated from
;

shall here treat Anthony as a historic char- the Egyptian into the Greek (Hieron. de
acter, despite the recent assumption that he Script. 88), but whether these are the same as
is "a myth" (see, e.g., Gwatkin's Arian Con- those now extant in Latin is doubtful (cf.
troversy, i8gi, and cf. F. W. Farrar, Contemp. Erdinger's ed. of them (Innsbruck, 1871).
Rev. 1887, pp. 617-627). Though by all accounts far from being a
Anthony was born c. a.d. 250 at Coma, on learned man (Soz. Hist. i. 13 Niceph. Hist. ;

the borders of Upper Egypt (Soz. Hist. i. 13). vii. 40 Athan. Vit. St. Ant.), his dis-
;

By his parents, who were wealthy Christians. courses are evidence that he was not alto-
he was trained in pious habits (Athan. Vit. St. gether illiterate. His influence was great at
Ant. ; Aug. de Doct. in Prol.). Six months the court of the emperor. Constantine the
after the death of his parents, being then 18 Great and his sons wrote to him as a father
3'ears of age, he chanced to hear in church the (Athan.), and when Athanasius was contending
words " If thou wilt be perfect," etc., and re- with the Meletians, Anthony wrote from his
solved to obey the precept literally, reserving cell to the emperor in behalf of his friend
only a small portion for his sister. Returning (Soz. ii. 31). His austerities were great as ;

into the church he heard, " Take no thought a rule he fasted till sunset, and sometimes for
for the morrow." On this he resolved to four days together. Of sleep he was equally
commend her to the care of some devout sparing. His coarse rough shirt is said to
woman, and gave away all his property to the have lasted him for a lifetime and his only ;

poor (Athan. cf. Soz. i. 13). ablutions seem to have been involuntary in
At that time cells of Anchorites {/nofacrrTipla) wading occasionally through a river. Yet
APHRAAT APHTHARTdDdCEfAE 31

he lived to an unusual age, robust, and in full monk) to give an exposition of the Christian
possession of his faculties to the last. He faith. Their importance consists in the
was not morose to others ; only to heretics picture that they give of the current teaching
was he austere and repulsive, refusing to hold of an independent church, already organized
any intercourse with them even for a moment. under its own primate, outside the Roman
He was careful always, though so universally empire. The language is Syriac, the quota-
revered, not to arrogate to himself priestly tions from the O.T. are taken from the
functions, shewing, even in his old age, a Peshitta, but in the N.T. he quotes the Gospels
marked and studious deference even to the from the Diatessaron. Some of his inter-
youngest deacons. pretations (e.g. Horn. XV.) shew signs of
Anthony was evidently a man, not merely Jewish or " Talmudical " teaching.
of strong determination, but of ability, and Doctrine. — As a theologian, Aphraat is
the discourses, if indeed they are his, which strikingly independent and remote from the
his disciples record as addressed to themselves controversies of his day in the Roman empire.
and to the pagan philosophers who disputed Writing 20 years after the council of Nicaea,
with him, shew that if he read little he thought he expresses himself in a way impossible for
much. He met objections against the doc- any one who had heard of the Arian contro-
trines of the Incarnation and the Resurrection versy, whatever his sympathies in it ; with
as mysterious by the retort that the pagan him we are back in the indefiniteness of an
mythology, whether in its grossness as appre- earlier age, when an orthodox writer might
hended by the vulgar or as the mystical system use on one page the language of psilanthropism
of philosophers, was equally above reason. (Horn, xvii.) and on another confess both the
From their dialectical subtleties he appealed Trinity and the Divinity of Christ (vi. 11.).
to facts, to a Christian's contempt of death This is consistent with the fact that the
and triumph over temptation ; and con- " church of the East " was so isolated that it
trasted the decay of pagan oracles and magic was never asked to accept the Nicene Creed
with the growth of Christianity in spite of till the year 410 ; and apparently used, till
persecutions. He taught that prayer to be that date, the formula that Aphraat gives
perfect must be ecstatic (Cass. Coll. ix. 31). (Horn. i.). See Nestorian Church.
Mingled with sound and practical advice are A curious feature in Aphraat's teaching is
strange stories of his visions, in which he the use of expressions that plainly suggest that
describes himself as engaged continually in he regarded the Holy Spirit as the female
deadly conflict with evil spirits. element in the Godhead (xviii. 10). It is a
Beyond these encounters and powers of thought strange to us, but not necessarily
exorcism it is not clear how far and in what unorthodox, and natural to a mind of Semitic
manner Anthony believed himself able to cast, that used a word for " spirit " that is
work miracles. It would indeed be strange if feminine its absence from Greek and Latin
;

so lonely an existence did not breed many in- theology may account in part for the enthrone-
voluntary and unconscious illusions still more ment of another figure as Queen of Heaven.
;

strange if those whose eyes were dazzled by Aphraat's whole teaching has the ascetic cast
the almost more than human self-abnegation natural to a 4th-cent. Oriental monk. The
of the great eremite had not exaggerated celibates (xviii.) are emphatically the aristo-
this aspect of his story. Among the many in cracy of the church, the professors of the
whom the marvellous experiences of Anthony higher life, who alone can attain to true
awoke a longing to renounce the world was communion with God. Any one who doubts
Augustine himself (Aug. Conf. viii. 6, 12). his own capacity for the keeping of a vow of
A. Verger, Vie de St. Antoine le Grand virginity, which apparently was often taken
(Tours, 1898). [I.G.S.] at the time of baptism, is advised to marry
Aphraat (Aphrahat, Farhad, " the Sage of before that rite, a fall subsequent to it being
Persia"). Little is known of the life of this a heinous sin (vii. 10). Nevertheless, all are
writer, who was the principal theologian of warned that open abandonment of the reso-
the Persian [i.e. Eastern or Nestorian) church lution and avowed marriage is better than
in the 4th cent. He was born late in the 3rd secret incontinence.
cent., and was certainly a monk, and probably Broadly, Aphraat shews us the existence of
a bishop of his church. Tradition says that an independent Oriental theology, which,
he resided at the monastery of Mar Mattai, however, was not allowed to develop on its
near Mosul, and was bishop in that province. own lines, but was assimilated to Greek
Either at his baptism or consecration he standards a few generations later. This was
a distinct loss to the fullness of Christian
adopted the name Jacob ( -nevryK. ^ ) in
thought, and a misfortune to the Syriac
addition to his own, and for this reason his church itself, in that it soon shewed itself
works have sometimes been attributed to unable to think on Greek lines, so that schisms
better-known namesakes. resulted that endure to this day. Parisot,
In the year 344 he presided over a council Patrol. Syriac. Aphraatis Denionstrationes ;

of the church of his province (Adiabene), and Labourt. Christianisme dans Vempire perse;

the synodal letter is included in his works Burkitt, Early Eastern Christianity, [w.a.w.]
(Homily xiv.). Sapor's persecution was then AphthartodOCetae (from &<p6aproi, incor-
raging in the country, but is known to have ruptible, and 5oK^u}, to think), a sect of the
been, for local reasons, less severe in this MoNOPHYSiTES, which arose in the 6th cent.
district than elsewhere. The time and man- They were also called Phantasiastae, because
ner of his death are not known. they appeared to acknowledge only a seeming

Works. These consist of a collection of 22 body of Christ, and to border on Docetism ;

Homilies, written at the request of a friend (a and Julianists, from their leader Julian, bp. of

32 APION APOLINARIS
Halicarnassus, and his contemporary Xenajas 1
TO 'loDSai'wi' Clem. Strom, i. 21), as
K.T.\. ;

of Hierapolis. They argued, from the com- the direct extracts preserved by Josephus
mingUng {avyxvcris) of the two natures of from his writings clearly prove. These at-
Christ, that the body of our Lord, from the tacks were contained in two works especially :

very beginning, became partaker of the in- in his Egyptian History (AiyvTrTiaKa), and in
corruptibility of the Logos, and was subject a separate treatise Against the Jews (Kara
to corruptibility merely Kar oiKouofiiav. They ToDSat'wi' ^i^Xoi, Justin. (?) I.e. Africanus,
;

appealed in proof especially to Christ's walking I.e.). Josephus exposes the ignorance, men-
on the sea during His earthly life. Their dacity, and self-contradictions of Apion.
opponents among the Monophysites, the (ii) It is not surprising that the spent wave
Severians (from Severus, patriarch of Anti- of this antagonism should have overflowed on
och), maintained that the body of Christ before
Judaic Christianity. Whether Apion actually
the Resurrection was corruptible, and were came in contact with any members of the new
hence called Phthartolatrae {'i'dapToXdrpai. from brotherhood is more than questionable. His
(pdaprbs and Xdrpela), or Corrupticolae, i.e. early date (for he flourished in the reigns of
Worshippers of the Corruptible. Both parties Tiberius, Caius, and Claudius) renders this
admitted the incorruptibiUty of Christ's body improbable. But in the writings of the Petro-
after the Resurrection. The word (pOopa. was Clementine cycle he holds a prominent place
generally taken in the sense of corruptibility, as an antagonist of the Gospel. In the
but sometimes in the sense of mere frailty. Clementine Homilies he appears in company
This whole question is rather one of scholastic with Anubion and Athenodorus among the
subtlety, though not wholly idle, and may be satellites of Simon Magus, the arch-enemy of
solved in this way : that the body of Christ, St. Peter and St. Peter's faith. The Clementine
before the Resurrection, was similar in its Recognitions contain nothing corresponding to
constitution to the body of Adam before the the disputes of Clement and Apion in the 4th,
Fall, containing the germ or possibility of 5th, and 6th books of the Homilies but at ;

immortality and incorruptibility, but subject the close of this work (x. 52), as at the close
to the influence of the elements, and was of the Homilies, he is introduced as a sub-
actually put to death by external violence, but sidiary character in the plot. See the
through the indwelling power of the sinless treatises on these writings by Schliemann,
Spirit was preserved from corruption and Uhlhorn, Hilgenfeld, Lehmann, and others.
raised again to an imperishable life, when (2) A Christian author about the end of 2nd
to use an ingenious distinction of St. Augustine cent., who wrote on the Hexaemeron (Eus.
— the immortalitas minor became imrnortalitas H. E. V. 27 Hieron. Vir. III. 49).
;
[l.]
Atto-
major, or the posse non mori a nan posse mori. Apolinaris, or Apolinarius Claudius.
The Aphthartodocetae were subdivided into Xii'dptos so spelt
: in the most ancient Gk.
Ktistolatrae, or, from their founder, Gajanitae, MSS. ; Latin writers generally use the form
who taught that the body of Christ was created Apollinaris), bp. of HierapoUs, in Phrygia
{KTLarbu ), and Aktistetae, who asserted that the A.D. 171 and onwards (Eus. Chron.) one ;

body of Christ, although in itself created, yet of the most active and esteemed Christian
by its union with the eternal Logos became writers of the day, he is praised by Photius
increate, and therefore incorruptible. The for his st)'le (Phot.' Coi. 14). Jerome enumer-
most consistent Monophysite in this direction ates him among the ecclesiastical writers who
was the rhetorician Stephanus Niobes (about were acquainted with heathen literature, and
550), who declared that every attempt to who made use of this knowledge in the refuta-
distinguish between the divine and the human tion of heresy (Ep. ad Magnum, iv. 83, p. 656.
in Christ was improper and useless, since they Cf. Theod. Haer. Fab. Compend. iii. 2).
had become absolutely one in him. An abbot Only a few fragments of his works have been
of Edessa, Bar Sudaili, extended this principle preserved. Eusebius {H. E. iv. 27) gives the
even to the creation, which he thought would following list of those which had fallen into his
at last be wholly absorbed in God. hands and his list is repeated by St. Jerome
;

Cf. the dissertations of Gieseler, Monophysi- (de Vir. III. c. 26) and Nicephorus (H. E.
iarum variae de Christi Persona Opiniones, 1835 iv. 11). (i) An apology addressed to Marcus
and 1838; the remarks of Dorner, History of Aurelius, probably written after a.d. 174,
Chrislology, ii. 159 fE. (German ed.) ; Ebrard, since it is Ukely that it contained the reference
Church and Doctrine History, i. 268 ; and to the miracle of the Thundering Legion else-
Schaff, Church History, iii. 766 ff. [p-S.] where quoted by Eusebius from Apolinaris
Apion. The name is properly Egyptian (H. E. v. 5). (2) Five books -rrpbs "EWrjvas,
(see Procop. Pers. i. 8 ; Ross. Inscr. fasc. 2, written according to Nicephorus in the form
p. 62) and derived from the god Apis, after the of a dialogue. (3) Two books -rrepi dX-qddas.
analogy of Anubion, Serapion, etc. (4) Two books irpos 'lovSalov? these are :

(1) The son of Poseidonius (Justin (?) Coh, not mentioned by St. Jerome, and the refer-
ad Gent. § 9 ; Africanus in Eus. Pr. Ev. x. 10. ence to them is absent from some copies of
p. 490), a grammarian of Alexandria in the Eusebius. (5) Writings against the Phry-
ist cent. His literary triumphs and critical gian heresy, published when Montanus was
labours on Homer do not fall within our scope, first propounding his heresy i.e. according to ;

but his conflict with Jews and Jewish Chris- the Chro7iicon of Eusebius, c. 172. These writ-
tians entitles him to a place here. ings, which were probably in the form of letters,
(i) His hostility to Judaism was deep, per- are appealed to by Serapion, bp. of Antioch
sistent, and unscrupulous (Joseph, c. Ap. ii. (Eus. H. E. V. 19) and Eusebius elsewhere
;

1-13; Clem. Horn. iv. 24, v. 2, Trdw 'louSaious (v. 16) describes Apolinaris as raised up as a
5t' dTTex^f'aj ^^oi'Ta, v. 27, 29, 6 dX6yws fiicrCiv strong and irresistible weapon against Mon-
APOLINARIS APOLLINARIS THE ELDER 33
tanism. The
situation of his see sufficiently ApoIIinarianism, Apollinarians, Apolll-
accounts for the prominent part taken by narists. [Apollinaris the Younger.]
Apolinaris in this controversy. are told We Apollinaris, St. and Mart., first bp. or
indeed by an anonymous writer who probably archbp. of Ravenna, perhaps from 50-78.
wrote at the end of the oth cent. (Auctor, According to the Life written by Agnellus in
Libelli Synodici apud Labbe et Cossart, i. 599) gth cent. {Liber Pontificalis, ap. Muratori,
that Apolinaris on this occasion assembled Rer. It. Script, ii. part i.), St. Apollinaris was
twenty-six other bishops in council, and ex- a native of Antioch, well instructed in Gk.
communicated Montanus and Maximilla, as and Lat. literature, who followed St. Peter
well as the shoemaker Theodotus. Besides to Rome, and was sent by him to Ravenna.
the works mentioned by Eusebius, who does On his way he healed the son of Irenaeus who
not give his list as a complete one, Theodoret was blind, and did other miracles. At Rav-
{Haer. Fab.u.2i) mentions (6) that Apolinaris enna he baptized in the river Bidens, and
wrote against the Encratites of the school of raised the daughter of the patrician Rufus to
Severus (Trpos tovs lleovripiavovs 'EiyKpariras). Ufe ; imprisoned by the heathen near the
(7) Photius {Cod. 14) mentions having read capitol, he was there fed by angels. After-
Apolinaris's work irphs EWiji/as Kal irepi wards, being expelled from the city, he
a.\T)6eias Kal wepl In the pre-
ei)<Te.'5eias. (8) preached in Dalmatia, Pannonia, Thrace, and
face to the Alexandrian Chronicle a work Corinth. After three years he returned,
nepl Tou irdcrxa is attributed to Apohnaris, suffered new persecutions, and did new mir-
from which two extracts are furnished acles, destroying a statue and temple of
which have given rise to much contro- Apollo by his prayers. He was martyred
versy the main point being whether (if the
;
under Vespasian, after an episcopate of over
fragments are genuine) Apolinaris wrote 28 years.
on the side of the practice of the Roman Other lives, such as that in the Acta Sanc-
church, or on that of the Quartodecimans of torum, are more full of miracles, but do not
Asia Minor. In support of the former view add anything else of importance. The day
is urged the similarity of the language of these of his death is agreed upon as July 23 the ;

fragments with that of Clement of Alexandria year may have been 78. From a sermon of
and of Hippolytus, who advocated the West- St. Peter Chrysologus in 5th cent. (No. 128,
ern practice and also the fact that Apolin-
;
pp. 552 seq. ed. Migne), it appears that St.
aris is not claimed as a Quartodeciman by Apollinaris was the only bp. of Ravenna who
Polycrates, bp. of Ephesus, in his letter to suffered martyrdom, and that he, strictly
Victor of Rome. On the other side it is urged speaking, can only be called a confessor. He
that Apohnaris speaks of his antagonists as did not die, it would seem, a violent death,
" some who raise contention through ignor- though it may have been hastened by the
ance," language which would rather convey persecutions he underwent. Probably, like
the impression that Apolinaris was writing his successor Aderitus, he died in the port-
against the opinions of some small sect than town Classis, where he was buried. A new
that he was combating the beUef of the whole chmch, still existing, was built about the
church of Asia Minor to which he belonged; same time as that of St. Vitale, and into this
and it is further urged that if Apolinaris had his body was translated by St. Maximianus
been the first to defend in the East the prac- c. 552. The mosaic over the apse seems to
tice which ultimately prevailed, it is incredible reahze the words of St. Peter Chrysologus
that neither Eusebius nor any early writer {U.S.), " Ecce vivit, ecce ut bonus pastor suo
mentions this early champion of the Catholic medius assistit in grege." As early as 575
practice. Socrates the historian {H. E. iii. 7) it was the custom to take solemn oaths upon

names Apohnaris, together with Irenaeus, his rehcs (St. Greg. Magn. Ep. vi. 61). His
Clement, and Serapion, as holding the doctrine body was taken to Ravenna in 15 15 for
that our Lord when He became man had a safety, but restored in 1655 (see authorities
human soul {e/xxpvxov rbv ivavOpuir-qaavTa).
"'
in Acta Sanctor. for July 23). This most
Apolinaris had been set down as a Chiliast interesting basihca, with the vacant monas-
on St. Jerome's authority [de Vir. III. c. tery adjoining, is now the only remnant of
18), but Routh (Rel. Sac. i. 174) has given
the town of Classis. [j-w.]
good reason for thinking that the Apolhnaris Apollinaris (or, according to Greek ortho-
intended is the younger Apolhnaris, of graphy, Apollinarius) the Elder, of Alex-
Laodicea since Jerome speaks of Irenaeus andria, was born about the beginning of the
;

and Apollinaris as the first and the last of the 4th cent. After teaching grammar for some
Greek Millenarians (hb. xi. Comm. in Ezech. time at Berytus in Phoenicea, he removed,
0. 36, iii. 952), and also states that Apolh-
A.D. 335, to Laodicea, of which church he
naris answered Dionysius of Alexandria
was made presbyter. Here he married and
{Prooem. in Comm. had a son, afterwards the bp. of Laodicea.
lib. xviii. Esaiae iii.
478).
[Apollinaris the Younger.] Both father
The Martyrologies commemorate and son were on intimate terms with the
the death heathen sophists Libanius and Epiphanius of
of Apollinaris on Feb. 7. Of the year or of Petra, frequenting the lecture-room of the
the place and manner of his death nothing is
known but that it was before the end of latter, on which account they were admonished
;

the 2nd cent, may be inferred from the lan- and, upon their venturing to sit out the
recitation of a hymn to Bacchus, excommuni-
guage in which he is described in the letter of
cated by Theodotus, bp. of Laodicea, but
Serapion written about that time (K\ai/5ioi; restored upon their subsequent repentance
AiroXivapiov tou jxaKapnoTaTov yei'o/xt'vov iv (Socr. Eccl. Hist. iii. 16;Soz. vi. 25).
lepairoXei Trjs 'Aaias £TriffK6irov). fc.s.] The elder Apollinaris is chiefly noted for
3

34 APOLLINARIS THE YOUNGER APOLLINARIS THE YOUNGER


his literary labours. When the edict of J ulian, reappeared from time to time, in a modified
A.D. 362, forbade the Christians to read shape, as an isolated theological opinion.
Greek literature, he undertook with the aid ApoUinaris was the first to apply the results
of his son to supply the void by reconstructing of the Nicene controversy to Christology pro-
the Scriptures on the classical models. Thus per, and to call the attention of the church to
the whole Biblical history down to Saul's the psychical and pneumatic element in the
accession was turned into 24 books of Homeric humanity of Christ but in his zeal for the
;

hexameters, each superscribed, like those of true deity of Christ, and fear of a double
the Iliad, by a letter of the alphabet. Lyrics, personality, he fell into the error of a partial
tragedies, and comedies, after the manner of denial of His true Humanity. Adopting the
Pindar, Euripides, and Menander, followed. psychological trichotomy of Plato {crQ/xa, fvxv,
Even the Gospels and Epistles were adapted TTvev/xa), for which he quoted I. Thess. v. 23
to the form of Socratic disputation. Two and Gal. v. 17, he attributed to Christ a
works alone remain as samples of their in- human body (crw^a) and a human soul (the
domitable zeal : a tragedy entitled Christus ^I'XV &'^oyos, the anima animans which man
Pattens, in 2601 lines, which has been edited has in common with the animal), but not a
among the works of Gregory Nazianzen and ;
rational spirit {vov's, irvevfia. \pvxv XoyiKi),
a version of the Psalms, in Homeric hexa- anima rationalis), and put in the place of the
meters. The most that can be said of this latter the divine Logos. In opposition to the
Psalter is that it is better than the tragedy, idea of a mere connexion of the Logos with
and that as a whole it fully bears out the the man Jesus, he wished to secure an organic
reputation of the poet (Basil. Ep. 273, 406) unity of the two, and so a true incarnation ;

that he was never at a loss for an expression. but he sought this at the expense of the most
Socrates, who is more trustworthy than Sozo- important constituent of man. He reached
men (v. 18), ascribes the O.T. poems to the only a 6e6s <TapKo<p6pos, as Nestorianism only
father (iii. 16), and adds that the son as the
an dydpuiros deocpopos, instead of the proper
greater rhetorician devoted his energies to
He appealed to the fact that "the
converting the Gospels and Epistles into
Platonic dialogues. He likewise mentions a
dedvOpuTros.
Scripture says, " the Word was made flesh

not spirit " God was manifest in the flesh,"
treatise on grammar compiled bj' the elder
;

ApolUnaris, XP"^'''"""'"? TOwif}. For different etc. To which Gregory Nazianzen justly
replied that in these passages the term adp^
opinions as to the authorship of father and
son, cf. Vossius, de Hist. Graec. ii. 18 de Poet.
;
was used bv synecdoche for the whole human
Graec. c. 9 Duport, Praef. ad Metaph. Psalm.
nature. In this way ApoUinaris estabhshed
so close a connexion of the Logos with human
;

(Lond. 1674).
flesh, that all the divine attributes were trans-
The Metaphrasis Psalmortim was pubUshed ferred to the human nature, and all the human
at Paris 1552 by Sylburg, at Heidelberg,
attributes to the divine, and the two merged
;

1596 and subsequently in various collections


;
in one nature in Christ. Hence he could
of the Fathers. The latest edition is that in
speak of a crucifixion of the Logos, and a
Migne's Patr. Gk. xxiii. [e.m.y.]
worship of His flesh. He made Christ a
ApoUinaris the Younger, bp. of Laodicea, middle being between God and man, in Whom,
flourished in the latter half of the 4th cent., as it were, one part divine and two parts
and was at first highly esteemed, even by human were fused in the unity of a new nature.
Athanasius and Basil, for his classical culture, He even ventiured to adduce created analogies
piety, and adhesion to the Nicene Creed of mixtures in nature. Christ, said he, is
during the Arian controversv, imtil he intro- oOt€ &vdpo3woi 6'\os, ovTi 6e6s, aXKd BeoO Kai
duced a Christological heresy which is called
after him, and which in some respects pre-
dvdpdiwov fil^is. On the other hand, he re-
pared the way for Monophysitism. He garded the orthodox view of a union of full
humanity with a full divinity in one person
assisted his father in rewriting the Christian
Scriptures in imitation of the style of Homer, of two wholes in one whole —
as an absurdity,
in a similar category with the mythological
Menander, etc., mentioned in the preceding
He also wrote in defence of Christian- figure of the Minotaur. But the Apollinarian
article.
idea of the union of the Logos with a trun-
ity against J ulian and Porphyry of orthodoxy
nature might be itself more
;

against the Manicheans, Arians, Marcellus, cated human


justly compared with this monster. Starting
Eunomius, and other heretics Biblical com-
from the Nicene homoousion as to the Logos,
;

mentaries, and other works, of which only


but denying the completeness of Christ's
fragments remain. Jerome enjoyed his in-
struction, A.D. 374. He did not secede from humanity, he met Arianism half-way, which
the communion of the church and begin to Ukewise put the divine Logos in the place of
the human spirit in Christ. But he strongly
form a sect of his own till 375. He died about unchangeableness, while
asserted Christ's
392. After his death his followers, who were
Arians taught His changeableness (TpeirrcTrjs).
not numerous, were divided into two parties,
the Polemians and Valentinians. His doctrine The faith of the church revolted against
was condemned by a synod of Alexandria such a mutilated and stunted humanity of
(not naming him), by two synods at Rome Christ, which necessarily involved also a
under Damasus (377 and 378), and by the merely partial redemption. The incarna-
second oecumenical council (381). Imperial tion is an assumption of the entire human
decrees prohibited the public worship of the nature, sin only excluded. The cvaapKUins is
ApoUinarists (388, 397, 428), until during the ivavdpihwrjais. To be a full and complete
5th cent, they were absorbed partly by the Redeemer, Christ must be a perfect man
orthodox, partly by the Monophysites. But (r^Xfios HvOpdiiros). The spirit or rational
the peculiar Christology of ApoUinaris has soul is the most important element in man.
Apollonius APOLLONIUS S5

the seat of intelligence and freedom, and of the tradition quoted also by Clement of
needs redemption as well as the soul and the Alexandria (Strom, vi. 5 sub finem) from the
body for sin has corrupted all the faculties.
; Apocryphal "Preaching of Peter" that our
Athanasius, the two Gregories, Basil, and Lord commanded His apostles not to leave
Epiphanius combated the Apollinarian error, Jerusalem for twelve years after His ascension.
but were unprepared to answer duly its This work of Apollonius was thought suffi-
main point, that two integral persons cannot ciently important by Tertullian to demand
form one person. The later orthodox doc- an answer ; bk. vii. of his lost work, de
trine surmounted this difficulty by teaching Ecstasi, was devoted to a refutation of his
the impersonality of the human nature of assertions (Hieron. de Vir. III. c. 50). Tille-
Christ, and by making the personality of mont, Hist. Eccl. ii. 426; Bonwetsch. Gesch.
Christ to reside wholly in the Logos. des Montanismus (Erlanger, 1881). [e.v.]
Apollinarianism opened the long line of Apollonius of Tyana. The life of this
Christological controversies, which resulted in philosopher is related by Philostratus, but
the Chalcedonian symbol. the entire fabulousness of his story is obvious.

Literature. Of the writings of ApoUi- The prodigies, anachronisms, and geographical
naris, irepi crap/cuiirews, irepl wlaTews, vepl dvacrrd- blunders, and entire absence of other authority
aews, Kara K€(pd\e(.ov, and other polemical and are fatal to it (see H. Conybeare in the Guard-
exegetical works and epistles, only fragments ian, June 21, 1893, and Apollon. Apology,
remain in the answers of Gregory of Nyssa and Acts, etc, Lond. 1894). Philostratus indeed
Theodoret, in Leontius Byzant. in the Catenae, claims the authority of " the records of cities
and in Angelo Mai's Nova Bibliotheca Patrum, and temples, and Apollonius's epistles to the
torn. vii. (Rom. 1854) pt. ii. pp. 82-91. Eleans, Delphians, Indians, and Egyptians " ;

Against Apollinaris are directed Athanasius's but the cities and temples are nameless.
Contra Apollinarium, or rather ire pi capKwafui^ What, then, can we really be said to know
Tou Kvplov ijfxuv 'I. X. {Opera, ed. Bened. torn. of Apollonius of Tyana ? That he was born
at Tyana and educated at Aegae, that he
i. pt. ii. pp. 921-955). written about 372
professed Pythagoreanism, and that he was
without naming Apolhnaris Gregory of ;

celebrated in his day for what were considered


Nyssa, A 670s, diTtppTjrivos vpbs rd 'AttoX-
magical arts, are the only facts that rest on
\Lvapiov, first edited by Zaccagni, Rom. 1698,
altogether unexceptionable authority. The
and then by Gallandi, Bibl. Vet. Patr. vi. 517- account of his opposition to the Stoic
577 BasiUus M., Ep. 265 [Opera, ed. Ben. t.
;
Euphrates may perhaps also be taken as
iii. pt. ii. 591 sqq.) Epiph. Haer. Ixxvii.
;
authentic. His reputation as a magician is
;

Theod. Fabulae Haer. iv. 8, v. g. Of the confirmed by the double authority of Moera-
later literature, cf. especially Petavius, de In- genes and Lucian (Pseudomantis, c. Yet
5).
carnatione Verbi, i. c. 6 Dorner, History oj there are also reasons for believing that he
;

Christology, i. 974-1080; Neander, History,


was more than a mere magician, and even a
i- 334-338 Schaff, History of the Christian philosopher of some considerable insight.
;

Church, iii. 708-714 Harnack, Dogmengesch. Eusebius (Praep. Ev. p. 1506) quotes a pas-
;

(1909), ii. 324-334 ; Thomasius, Dogmengesch. sage from his book On Sacrifices (with the
(1889), 314 f. Schwane, Dogmengesch. (1895), reservation " Apollonius is said to write as
;

277-283; G. Voisin, L'Apollinarisme (Paris, follows "), which if really his is certainly re-
1901). [p.s.]
markable. All later authorities base their
Apollonius, M. [CoMMODus.] accounts on the Life by Philostratus except ;

Apollonius of Ephesus, so called on the Origen, who quotes Moeragenes. Hierocles


doubtful authority of the writer of Prae- mentions Maximus of Aegae and Damis, but
destinatus, ed. by Sirmond, who styles him bp. probably only knew of them through Philos-
of Ephesus, but the silence of Eusebius and tratus. We now come to the collection of
all other earUer testimony makes it difficult to
letters still extant which are attributed to
lay much stress on this statement. He wrote Apollonius. Prof. Jowett (in the Z). of G. and
a work in five books against the Cataphrygian R. Biogr.) thinks that part may be genuine
;
or Montanist heresy. Fragments of the first but Kayser and Zeller reject them summarily,
three books are extant in Eusebius [H. E. and most writers on Apollonius barely mention
V. 18), and contain much that is curious
them. Zeller even says that they are obviously
and valuable with regard to the lives and composed to suit the Life by Philostratus. We
characters of Montanus, the prophetesses do not think that this opinion can be held by
Priscilla and Maximilla, and their followers.
any one who attentively compares the letters
Jerome also devotes an article to Apollonius. with the biography and we think it probable ;

Vir. Illust. c. 50, in which he calls him dvT)p that the letters, whether genuine or not, were
eWoyifiwraTos, the author of a p-iya. Kal composed before the work of Philostratus, and
ewicrripov reuxos, and quotes him as stating hence form our earUest and best authority
that Montanus and his prophetesses hanged respecting Apollonius.
themselves. The book professes to be written The question arises, Had Philostratus in the
40 years after the commencement of Mon- biography any idea of attacking Christianity
tanus's pretensions to prophesy. Taking for by setting up a rival to Christ ? Hierocles,
the rise of Montanism the date given in the at the end of the 3rd cent., was the first person
Chronicon of Eusebius (a.d. 172), this would who actually apphed the work of Philostratus
give about a.d. 210 for the date of this work. to this purpose, as is said expressly by Euse-
Eusebius mentions also that Apollonius cites bius, who replied to him. The Deists of the
the Revelation of St. John, that he relates the 1 8th cent., both in France and England, used
raising to life of a dead man at Ephesus by them thus; but whereas Hierocles would admit
the same John, and that he makes mention the miracles both of Christ and of Apollonius,

;

36 APOLLONIUS APOSTOLIC FATHERS


Voltaire and Lord Herbert had an equal dis- from Christianity. The Christians were not
belief in both. Naturally, none of these then by any means an unknown sect so well ;

writers held that Philostratus wrote in direct known were they that Alexander Severus
imitation of the Gospels, as it would have (with a singular parallelism to the supposed
marred their point to do so. But equally conduct of Philostratus) placed Christ with
naturally the orthodox writers, beginning Abraham, Orpheus, and Apollonius himself,
with Huet, bp. of Avranches, and coming among his household gods. Secondly, the
down through Paley to our own day, have resemblance to the Gospel histories is in par-
considered Philostratus a direct though con- ticular instances very broad indeed. The
cealed antagonist of Christianity. This view miraculous birth of Proteus, and the circum-
has been opposed in Germany by Meiners, stances attending it; the healing of demoni-
Neander, Buhle, and Jacobs, and in England acal possessions (was the idea of such posses-
by Watson {Contemp. Rev. Feb. 1867). Baur sions in any way famiUar to the Greeks ?)
took an intermediate view in his Apollonius the raising of the dead the appearance of
;

von Tyana und Christus, Tiibingen, 1832), Apollonius to two of his disciples after his
which in its main outUne will we think com- deUverance from Domitian his ascent to
;

mend itself as by far the most probable ac- heaven, and appearance after his death,
count. According to this view Philostratus these are points of similarity that cannot be
wrote with no strictly polemical reference to evaded and, taken together with the central
:

Christianity, but, in the eclectic spirit of his idea of the book, they seem to imply that
time, strove to accommodate Christianity to Philostratus consciously borrowed from the
the heathen religion. We are disposed to Gospels. It should be noticed that the very
believe, without attributing to Philostratus striking resemblances between the biography
any formal design of opposing or assimilating of Apollonius and the Gospels are resem-
Christianity, that he was strongly influenced blances in externals ; the inner spirit is
by its ideas and history. entirely different :in the one we fmd the
The central aim of his biography is to set self-contained philosophic spirit, striking even
forth, not merely wise precepts in the abstract, amid all the rhetoric and tawdry marvels with
but an example of supreme wisdom for which Philostratus has dressed it in the other, ;

humanity to imitate. It is not implied by the spirit of the insufficiency of self.


this that Philostratus considered Apollonius Those who wish to examine the whole
as entirely and necessarily unique among question respecting Apollonius should consult
men but it is impUed that he considered Baur, op. cit. Kayser's Philostratus Zeller's
; ; ;

him as more than a mere teacher of doctrine, Philosophie der Griechen and the writers
;

as a pattern to men in his own person, as one noticed above. [J-R-m.]


in whom wisdom and truth were incorporate. Apostolic Fathers. Definition of the Term. —
He wished men to honour Apollonius himself, The adjective Apostolicus {d-rroa-ToXiKos) is
and not merely to study or believe certain used to denote either morally or doctrinally
truths deUvered by Apollonius. This cannot, accordance with the Apostles, or historically
we think, be doubted by any one who reflects connexion with the Apostles. In this latter
on the whole tone of the book. Apollonius sense it is especially applied to churches
is called " divine " ; his disciples stand in founded directly by Apostles, or to persons
an altogether different relation to him from associated with and taught by Apostles. The
that in which the disciples of Socrates stand to former are Apostolicae ecclesiae; the latter
Socrates ; they do not argue with him as Apostolici viri, or Apostolici simply. See
equals with an equal ; they follow him, listen especially Tertull. de Praescr. 32, " ut primus
to him, are rebuked by him. His miracles, ille episcopus aliquem ex apostolis vel apos-
again, do not result from his being in posses- tolicis viris, qui tamen cum apostolis persever-
sion of any secret communicable to other men, avit, habuerit auctorem et antecessorem. Hoc
but arise from his own nature and wisdom. enim modo ecclesiae apostoUcae census suos
Such a character must remind us, however deferunt sicut Smyrnaeorum ecclesia Poly-
different in some respects, of the Christ of the carpum ab Joanne coUocatum refert, sicut
Gospels. But was any character like this, or Romanorum Clementem a Petro ordinatum
approaching to this, drawn by any heathen itidem," with the whole context. Cf. also de
writer before Christ ? Wethink not. Philo- Praescr. 20, 21 ; adv. Marc. i. 21, v. 2 de;

sophy and magic, the search after knowledge Cam. Chr. 2 de Pudic. 21.
; Hence among
and the search after power, were familiar to the Evangelists, while St. Matthew and St.
men who had never heard of Christianity John are Apostoli, St. Mark and St. Luke are
;

but this ideal is different from either, and from Apostolici [adv. Marc. iv. 2). In accordance
both of them united. Those who affirm that with this usage the term Apostolic Fathers is
Philostratus never thought of the Christian confined to those who are known, or may
history in his work, sa3' that he intended reasonably be presumed, to have associated
Apollonius as a rival to Pythagoras. But by with and derived their teaching directly from
whom was Pythagoras portrayed as this super- some Apostle. In its widest range it will
human ideal ? Not certainly by any writer include Barnabas, Hennas, Clemens, Ignatius,
of the centuries before Christ. Even Plutarch Polycarp, Papias, and the writer of the epistle
(Numa, c. viii.) does not set him up as an to Diognetus. Some of these fail to satisfy
ideal exemplar. Is it possible that the age of the conditions which alone entitle to a place
Caracalla and Severus, so eclectic, so tradi- among the works of the Apostolic Fathers.
tional, so unoriginal, can of its own mere Thus the " Shepherd " of Hermas has been
motion have gone off into this new and un- placed in this category, because it was sup-
heard-of line?— unheard of, that is, unless, as posed to have been written by the person of
we must, we suppose it to have been borrowed this name mentioned by St. Paul (Rom. xvi.
APOSTOLIC FATHERS APOSTOLIC FATHERS 37

14 ;see Origeii ad loc. Op. iv. 683) ; but a during his journey. A
bishop of a leading
more authentic tradition ascribes it to the church, having occasion to send a parcel to
brother of Pius, who was bp. of Rome a little another brotherhood at a distance, takes the
before the middle of 2nd cent. {Canon. Murat. opportunity of writing, in answer to their
p. 58, ed. Tregelles see pseudo-Tertull. solicitations, a few plain words of advice and
;

Poem. adv. Marc. iii. 294, in TertuU. Op. ii. instruction. Such is the simple account of
792, ed. Oehler). Thus again the claim of the letters of Clement, Ignatius, and Polycarp
Papias to be considered an Apostolic Father respectively.
rests on the supposition that he was a disciple The same form is preserved in the Ep. of
of St. John the Evangelist, as Irenaeus Barnabas and the letter to Diognetus. But
apparently imagines [Haer. v. 33, § 4) but the spirit is somewhat different. They are
;

Eusebius says that Irenaeus was mistaken, rather treatises clothed in an epistolary dress,
and that the teacher of Papias was not the the aim of the one being polemical, of the other
Apostle St. John, but the presbyter of the apologetic. Herein they resemble Hebrews
same name (H. E. iii. 39). Again, there more than the Epp. of St. Paul.
is some uncertainty about the Epistle to " The Apostolic Fathers," says de Pres-
Diognetus. Its claim is founded on an ex- sense, " are not great writers, but great
pression which occurs in § 11, and which has characters " {Trois Premiers Siecles, ii. 384).
been interpreted literally as implying that Their style is loose there is a want of ar-
;

the writer was a personal disciple of one or rangement in the topics, and an absence of
other of the Apostles. But in the first place system in their teaching. On the one hand
the context shews that this literal interpreta- they present a marked contrast to the depth
tion is out of place, and the passage must be and clearness of conception with which the
explained as follows " I do not make any several N.T. writers place before us different
:

strange statements nor indulge in unreason- aspects of the Gospel, and by which their title
able questionings, but having learnt my
to a special inspiration is established. On the
lessons from the Apostles (lit. having become other, they lack the scientific spirit which
a disciple of Apostles), I stand forward as a distinguished the Fathers of the 4th and 5th
teacher of the nations " and secondly, this cents., and which enabled them to formulate
;

is no part of the Ep. to Diognetus proper the doctrines of the faith as a bulwark against
(§§ i-io), but belongs to a later writing, which unbridled speculation. But though they are
has been accidentally attached to the Epistle, deficient in distinctness of conception and
owing to the loss of some leaves in the MS. power of exposition, " this inferiority " to
This latter fact is conclusive. If therefore the the later Fathers " is amply compensated by
Epistle has any title to a place among the a certain naivete and simplicity which forms
Apostolic Fathers, it must be established by the charm of their letters. If they have not
internal evidence and though the internal
; the precision of the scientific spirit, they are
character suggests an early date, perhaps as free from its narrowness." There is a breadth
early as about a.d. 117 (see Westcott, Canon, of moral sympathy, an earnest sense of per-
P- 79) yet there is no hint of any historical
>
sonal responsibility, a fervour of Christian
connexion between the writer and the devotion, which is the noblest testimony to
Apostles. Lastly, the so-called Ep. of Bar- the influence of the Gospel on characters
nabas occupies an unique position. If the obviously very diverse, and which will always
writer had been the companion of St. Paul command for their writings a respect to which
who bore that name, then he would more their literary merits could lay no claim. The
properly be styled, not an " apostolic man," gentleness and serenity of Clement, whose
as he is designated by Clement of Alexandria whole spirit is absorbed in contemplating the
(Strom, ii. 20, p. 489, 6 airoffToKLKbs Bapvdjias), harmonies of nature and of grace ; the fiery
but an " apostle," as the same Clement else- zeal of Ignatius, in whom the one over-
where styles him {Strom, ii. 6, p. 445 ii. 7,
;
mastering desire of martyrdom has crushed
p. 447), in accordance with St. Luke's language all human passion ;the unbroken constancy
(Acts xiv. 14). But if the writer be not the of Polycarp, whose protracted life is spent in
Apostle Barnabas, then we have no evidence maintaining the faith once delivered to the
of any personal relations with the Apostles, saints,— these are lessons which can never
though such is not impossible, as the Epistle become antiquated or lose their value.
must have been written at some date between Their Relation to the Apostolic Teaching and
the age of Vespasian and that of Nerva. to the Canonical Scriptures. —
Of the respective
Three names remain, Clement, Ignatius, and provinces of the Apostolic Fathers, we may
Polycarp, about which there is no reasonable say that Clement co-ordinates the different
ground for hesitation. elements of Christian teaching as left by
All the genuine writings of these three the Apostles ; and Ignatius consolidates the
Apostolic Fathers are epistolary in form, structure of ecclesiastical polity, as sketched
modelled more or less after the pattern of the out by them while for Polycarp, whose
;

Canonical Epistles, especially those of St. active career was just beginning as theirs
Paul, and called forth by pressing temporary ended, and who hved on for more than half
needs. In no case is any literary motive a century after their deaths, was reserved the
prominent. A famous teacher writes in the task of handing down unimpaired to a later
name of the community over which he pre- generation the Apostolic doctrine and order
sides to quell the dissensions of a distant but thus co-ordinated and consolidated by his
friendly church. An aged disciple on his elder contemporaries —
a task for which he
way to martyrdom pours out a few parting was eminently fitted by his passive and
words of exhortation to the Christian brother- receptive character.
hoods with whom he is brought in contact The writings of these three Fathers lie well
; —

38 APOSTOLIC FATHERS AQUILA


within the main stream of Catholic teaching. principal subject, in five 8vo volumes, in-
They are the proper link between the Canon- cludes Clement, Ignatius, Polycarp. But after
ical Scriptures and the church Fathers of the his death a single vol. was pub. containing re-
succeeding ages. They recognize all the vised texts of all the Apostohc Fathers, with
different elements of the Apostolic teaching, short introductions and Eng. translations.
though combining them in different propor- Apostolici, one of the names adopted by an
tions. " They prove that Christianity was ascetic sect in Phrygia, Cilicia, and Pamphylia.
Catholic from the very first, uniting a variety Their leading principle seems to have been
of forms in one faith. They shew that the the rejection of private property. They are
great facts of the Gospel narrative, and the also said to have resembled Tatian, the
substance of the Apostolic letters, formed Encratites, and the " Cathari " (Novatian-
the basis and moulded the expression of the ists), in that they refused to admit offenders to
common creed" (Westcott, Canon, p. 55). communion, and condemned marriage. They
But when we turn to the other writings for appealed chiefly to the apocryphal Acts of
which a place among the Apostolic Fathers Andrew and of Thomas. They entitled them-
has been claimed, the case is different. Though selves Apolactiri, i.e. " Renuntiants." What
the writers are all apparently within the pale little is recorded about them, beyond the name,
of the church, yet there is a tendency to that we owe to Epiphanius [Haer. Ixi. 506-513),

one-sided exaggeration either in the direc- who apparently knew them only by vague

tion of Judaisms or the opposite which oral report. Their place in his treatise would
stands on the very verge of heresy. In the naturally assign them to the 3rd cent. ; and
Ep. of Barnabas and in the letter to Diognetus, they evidently had not ceased to exist in the
the repulsion from Judaism is so violent, that 4th. " Encratites, Saccophori, and Apotac-
one step further would have carried the tites," described together as " an offshoot of^
writers into Gnostic or Marcionite dualism. the Marcionites," are associated with Nova-^
On the other hand, in the Shepherd of tianists by Basil in a letter answering queries
Hermas, and possibly in the Expositions from Amphilochius of Iconium (cxcix. can.
of Papias (for in this instance the inferences 47 cf. clxxxviii. can. i), written in 375, when
;

drawn from a few scanty fragments must be Epiphanius had begun and not completed
precarious), the sympathy with the Old Dis- his work. A law of Theodosius against the
pensation is unduly strong, and the distinctive Manicheans in 381 {Cod. Theod. XVI. v. 7; cf.
features of the Gospel are darkened by the II an. 383) alleges that some of these heretics
shadow of the Law thus projected upon them. endeavoured to evade the existing severe
In Clement, Ignatius, and Polycarp, both legislation by calling themselves " Encratites,
extremes are avoided. Apotactites, Hydroparastatae, or Saccophori."
For the relation of these writers to the Any true historical connexion, however,
Canonical Scriptures the reader is referred to between the Apostolici and either the Mar-
the thorough investigation in Westcott's Hist, cionists or the Manicheans is highly improb-
of the Canon, pp. 19-55. It will be sufficient able. [H.]
here to state the more important results: (i) Apphianus, or Appianus, or Amphianus,
The Apostolic Fathers do not, as a rule, quote M., a son of rich parents at " Pagae " (pro-
by name the canonical writings of the N.T. bably Araxas) in Lycia, educated in the
But (2), though (with exceptions) the books schools of Berytus, who being not twenty
of the N.T. are not quoted by name, fragments years old interrupted the governor at Caesarea
of most of the canonical Epistles lie embedded when sacrificing, by an exhortation to desist
in the writings of these Fathers, whose from idolatry, and was, after horrible tortures
language is thoroughly leavened with the — e.g. by his feet being wrapped in a tunica
Apostolic diction. In like manner the facts molesta of flax steeped in oil and set on fire
of the Gospel history are referred to, and the finally martyred by drowning, April 11, 306
words of our Lord given, though for the most (Eus. de Mart. Palaest. iv. Syriac Acta, in
;

part not as direct quotations. For (3) there Assemani, Act. Mart. ii. 189 seq.). [a.w.h.]
is no decisive evidence that these Fathers
Aqulla {'.\Kv\as), the author of a translation
recognized a Canon of the N.T., as a distinctly
into Greek, which was held in
defined body of writings; though Barnabas of the O.T.
and was reproduced
once introduces our Lord's words as recorded much esteem by the Jews
in Matt. xx. 16, xxii. 14, with the usual by
Origen in the third column of the Hexapla,
seems to have belonged to the earUer half of
formula of Scriptural citation, "As it is
is known regarding his per-
written ((is •yiypawrai)." But (4), on the 2nd cent. Little
sonal history beyond the fact that he was,
other hand, they assign a special and pre-
like the Aquila associated with St. Paul, a
eminent authority to the Apostles which
of Pontus, and probably, according to
they distinctly disclaim for themselves. This native
the more definite tradition, of Sinope. We
is the case with Clement (§§ 5, 7) and Ignatius
from Irenaeus, in whom we find
(Rom. 4), speaking of St. Peter and St. Paul learn also him {adv. Hacr.
earliest mention of
and with Polycarp (§ 3), speaking of St. Paul the
iii. 24), that he was a proselyte to the Jewish
— the only Apostles that are mentioned by
— confirmed by Eusebius
name in these writings. (5) Lastly, though faith a statement TrpocnjXnTos 5^ 6
the language of the Canonical Gospels is {Demonst.
Evang. vii. i :

(Ep. ad
frequently not quoted word for word, yet 'kKvXas 7]v ov (pvaei. 'lovdaios), Jerome
there is no distinct allusion to any apocryphal Pammach. Opp. iv. 2, p. 255), and other
narrative. [l.] Fathers, as well as by the Jerusalem Talmud
The standard work on the Apostolic {Megill. f. 71, c. 3 ; Kiddush. f. 59. c. i,
Fathers is by the writer of the above article, where there can be little doubt that the Akilas
the late bp. Lightfoot. His work on the referred to is to be identified with Aquila).

ARCHELAUS ARETHAS 39

From this circumstance he is was probably (cf. Phot. Cod. 85) a certain
frequently called
" Aquila the proselyte." Hegemonius. The disputation and Archelaus
The object of Aquila was to furnish a himself seem to be fictitious but the work ;

translation on which the Jews could rely as affords valuable information respecting the
a more accurate rendering of the Hebrew Manichean system (cf. Bardenhewer, 1908, pp.
than that of the Septuagint, which not only 208-260). [h.w.]
was in many instances loose and incorrect Arethas, bp. of Caesarea in Cappadocia, and
from the first, but had also in the course Andreas, an earlier archbp. of the same see,
of four centuries undergone change and are so intimately associated as commentators
corruption. With this view he made his on the Book of Revelation, and so little
version strictly literal, striving to provide a known otherwise, that they may most fitly
Greek equivalent for everv Hebrew word be noticed together. We have no direct in-
and particle, in frequent disregard of the formation regarding either, beyond the bare
rules of grammar and of idiom, and with the fact of their common connexion with the see
result of often rendering his meaning hardly of Caesarea. The dates at which they flour-
intelligible to those who were not acquainted ished can only be inferred approximately, and
with Hebrew (as in Job xxx. i, kuI vvv somewhat vaguely, from incidental notices of
iy^Xaa-av iir' i/xol jSpo-xe'is irap e/xi rals T^fM^pas persons or of events in their writings. The
question has been most fully discussed by
Ps. xlix. 21, inriXa^es iadnevos Iffo/xai onoioi ffoi
Rettig [Die Zeugnisse des Andreas und Arethas
Ps. cxlix. 6, Kal fj^axo-i-po- crTO/xdTUjv ev xepalv
. . in the Theol. Studien und Kritiken for
.

avTuiv). He carefully endeavoured even to re- 1831, pp. 734 seq.) and his conclusions have
;

produce Hebrew etymologies in Greek, and for been very generally accepted. He has shewn
that purpose freely coined new forms (as in by enumerating the succession of bishops in
Ps. xxi. 13, SvvdffTaiBaaav BLedrj/naTicravTS fie Caesarea that the last 30 or 40 years of the
Ps. cxviii. 10, M
ayvo-nfiariar]^ ^e). Origen 5th cent, may be assigned to Andreas and
accordingly characterizes him as SovXevwv rrj Arethas and the absence of any reference
;

E/3pal\-^ X^^et {Ep. ad Afric), and the frag- to later events favours the belief that the
ments of the version which have been preserved work was prepared towards the close of the
amply bear out the truth of the description. 5th. or in the earlier part of the 6th, cent.
But the excessively literal character of the The commentary of Andreas on the Apo-
work, while impairing its value as a translation calypse (entitled '^pfiyjvtia els ttjv 'A-^OKaXvipiv)
for those who were not Jews, renders it all seems to have been the earliest systematic
the more valuable as a witness to the state exposition of the book in the Greek church.
of the Hebrew text from which it was made. The statement of R. Simon, Fabricius, Rosen-
(As to the nature and value of the version, miiller, and others, that the work belongs to
see Smith's D. B. iii. 1622.) the class of Catenae, is not borne out either by
Several scholars of eminence have recently its form or by the language of the Preface,
maintained that Aquila is to be identified which simply means that he made use of the
not only with the Akilas of the Talmud, but materials which he found in the early writers
also with Onkelos. whose name is associ- whom he names, and occasionally quoted
ated with the well-known Targum on the their expressions (Trap' Siv r/yueis iroXXas Xa^ovres
Pentateuch holding that the latter is merely d(popfxds
;
Kadihs iv TLcri. ToVots XP^"'
. .

an altered form of the name, and that the. Toi'TWf napedifxeda). He wrote, in compliance
Chaldee version came to receive what is now with the urgent request of persons who had a
its ordinary designation from its being drawn
greater opinion of his judgment than he had
up on the model, or after the manner, of that himself, " to unfold the meaning of the Apo-
of Aquila. The arguments in support of this calypse, and to make the suitable application
view, which appear to have great weight, are
of its predictions to the times that followed
set forth with much clearness and force by Mr.
it " {dvairTVk,a.i Trjv 'ATroKdXv\piv. Kal roh
Deutsch in his article on " Versions, Ancient,
. . .

(Targum)," in Smith's D. B. iii. 1642-1645. fierd T7JI' avTrjs 6irTa(Tiav xpo'»'ois i<papfJLO(Tai tcl
The fragments of the version of Aquila 7rpo(t)r]T€v9evTa). His method rests on the
first collected by Morinus for the Sixtine distinction of a threefold sense in Scripture
edition of the Septuagint, Rome, 1587, and —
the literal or outward historical {to ypd/xfia
subsequently by Drusius, in his Veterum interp. Kal 7] Kar aiadrjcnv IcTTOpia), the tropological or
Graec. in V. T. Fragmenta, Arnb. 1622 —
are moral {ij TponoXoyia i^ aladriTuiv inl to. vorjrd
more fully given in the edition of the Hexapla odriyovcra rbv dvayivJiaKovra), and the mystical
by Montfaucon, Paris 1714, and its abridgment or speculative [i] tCcv y.e\X6vTwv Kal Cn/'ijXo-
by Bahrdt, 1769-1770. A most complete and repuii' dvaywyr) the expositor of
Kai dewpia) ;
valuable edition is that by Mr. Frederick
Field: Oxf. 1867-1870 (see Field, Hexapla the Revelation is chiefly concerned with the
[1875], xvi-xxvii). The chief questions con- latter. He divided the text into twenty-four
nected with Aquila are discussed by Mont- Xoyoi corresponding to the four-and-twenty
faucon, and by Hody {de Bibliorum Textibus elders, and 72 Ke(pdXaia, according to the
Originalibus, Oxf. 1705). [w.p.d.T threefold distinction of body, soul, and spirit
Arohelaus, supposed bp. of Carchar (perhaps (24x3 = 72). The exposition contains not
Carrhoe Harrom in Mesopotamia). A work is a little that is of value, but it is full of the
attributed to him called Acta Disputationis fanciful interpretations to which the method
Archel. Ep. Mesop. et Manetis haeresiarchae. gave rise. The paucity of MSS. of the Apo-
It is extant in a Latin translation from a calypse renders the text which accompanies
Greek text, but some think the Greek is the commentary of great importance to
derived from a Syriac original. The author criticism and Bengel was of opinion that the
;
40 ARINTHAEUS ARISTO PELLAEUS
work of Andreas, by directing fresh attention (in Zahn's Forschungen, V. p. 159, and in an
to the book, contributed in no small degree edition published at Erlangen 1894), and it is
to its more frequent use and transcription. not yet agreed whether the Syrian or the Greek
An interesting passage in the Preface, where represents the original. It seems clear that
the writer mentions Papias among the other the Apology was presented, not to Hadrian,
Fathers whose testimony to the inspiration but to Antoninus Pius. The main subject of
of the book rendered it superfluous to enlarge the Apology, which, in the legend, is supposed
on that point, has been much discussed. to be addressed by Barlaam to Josaphat, is
The work of Arethas, again, professes to be that the Christians alone possess the true
a compilation. It is no mere reproduction of knowledge of God. The emperor is invited
the work of his predecessor, although it incor- to consider the conceptions of God among the
porates a large portion of the contents of that various races of mankind, Barbarians and
work, occasionally abridging or modifying the Greeks, Jews and Christians it is then shewn
;

language of Andreas, and often specifying with how the Christians express their belief in their
more precision the sources of his quotations. lives, and an attractive sketch of Christian
But it contains much derived from other life is given. The Apology has points of con-
sources, or contributed by Arethas himself. tact with the Preaching of Peter, with the
The commentary of Andreas was first Shepherd, with the Didache, with Justin
printed in the form of an imperfect and in- Martyr, and particularly with the Ep. to
accurate Latin version by Peltanus in i574- Diognetus. IMention is made of the Incarna-
The Greek text was first edited by Sylburg tion of the Son of God through a Hebrew
from a collation of three MSS. in 1596, along maiden and of Christ's return to Judgment.
with a reprint of the Latin version. It has The Apology is thus of an interesting and
been several times reissued in connexion with original character. Two other fragments
the works of Chrysostom. The Greek text of exist in Armenian which are ascribed tg
Arethas is presented in its fullest and best Aristides, a homily on the cry of the Robber
form by Cramer (in his Catenae Gk. Pairum in and the answer of the Crucified, and a passage
N. T., Oxf. 1840) whose valuable additions,
;
from " a letter to all philosophers," but their
furnished chiefly by the Codex Baroccianus, genuineness is doubtful, and F. C. Conybeare,
exhibit the text in a shape so different from in the Guardian, 1894 (July 18), has shewn
that previously printed as to make the latter that in the 5th and 7th cents, literary frauds
often appear a mere abridgment. [w.p.d.] were often connected with the name of Aris-
Arinthaeus, a general under Valens, with tides and other names of old Christian
whom St. Basil corresponds, and from whom literature. [h.w.]
he seeks protection for a friend in difficulty Aristion, one of the " elders " from whom
(Ep. 179). On his death Basil writes a letter Papias professed to have derived traditional
of consolation to his widow, in which he information (Eus. H. E. iii. 39), and described
dwells on his remarkable endowments, his by him as a personal follower of our Lord.
striking personal beauty and strength, as Beyond this, there is no trustworthy infor-
well as his lofty character and renown. Like mation about him. The Roman Martyrology
many others in that age, Arinthaeus, though (p. 102, Ven. 1630), apparently referring to the
a devout Christian and a protector of the description Just quoted, states on the author-
Church, deferred his baptism till at the point ity of Papias that he was one of the seventy-
of death {Ep. 269). He was consul in the two disciples of Christ. It commemorates his
year 372, and must have died before Basil martyrdom at Salamis in Cyprus on Feb. 22,
{a.d. 379). If the story told by Theodoret the same day as that of Papias at Pergamus.
(H. E. iv. 30) be true, that he was present and Cotelerius conjectures that he may be the
seconded the rebuke administered to Valens Aristo who is given as the first bp. of Smyrna
by the general Trajan in 378 for his persecu- [A post. Const, vii. 45 Harnack, Altchr. Lit.
;

tion of the Catholics, his death cannot have i. 64; Conyheare, in E xpositor, i8g:i). [g.s.]
preceded his friend's by many months. For Aristo Pellaeus, the supposed author of a
his military achievements see Tillemont, lost dialogue between Papiscus and Jason,
Empereurs, v. 100. [l.] quoted, without his name, by Origen {cont.
Aristides, of Athens ;mentioned by Euse- Celsus, iv. 52) and referred to by Eusebius
bius as having presented to the emperor (Hist. Eccl. iv. c. 6, pp. 145, 146) by Moses
;

Hadrian an Apology for the Christians (Hist. Chorenensis, in a history of Armenia (bk. ii.
Eccl. iv. c. 3). Jerome also {de Vir. III. c. 20, c. 57) and by Maximus, in his notes on the
;

and Ep. 83, ad Magnum) mentions him as work de Mystica Theol., ascribed to Dionysius
an Athenian philosopher and a disciple of the Areopagite (c. i. p. 17, ed. Corderii) in
Christ ; and says that his Apology, containing these words, " I have also read the expression
the principles of the faith, was well known. seven heavens in the dialogue of Papiscus
'
'

But it was lost until, in 1878, the Mechitarists and Jason, composed by Aristo of Pella,
published part of an Armenian translation, the which Clemens of Alexandria in the 6th book
genuineness of which was vindicated by Har- of his Hypotyposes says was written by St.
nack in Texte und Untersuch. i. i, 2. But in Luke." This testimony is the only one con-
1 89 1 J. Rendel Harris and J. Armitage Robin- necting the name of Aristo with the dialogue,
son (now Dean of Westminster) published and though doubt has been thrown on its
in Texts and Studies, I. i., a complete Syrian trustworthiness by its strange assertion that
translation from the Codex Sinait. Syr. 16, Clement attributed the work to St. Luke,
and shewed that the greater part of the Maximus is far less likely to be in error when
Apology was found in Greek in the legend of simply giving the name of an author than
Barlaam and Josaphat. These texts have when repeating another's words. Jason, a
been carefully discussed, especially by Seeberg Jewish Christian, argues so conclusively that
ARIUS ARros 41

the Messianic prophecies are fulfilled in our could only postpone the controversy, and
Lord that his opponent, the J e\v Papiscus, begs that its resumption was therefore only a
to be baptized. question of time. For the synod of Antioch
We cannot fix the date of this dialogue, which condemned Paul of Samosata had ex-
except that it must have been written before pressed its disapproval of the word 6fxoov<n,osin
the time of Celsus, i.e. before the middle of one sense. Thebp. (Alexander) of Alexandria
the 2nd cent. and, if Aristo be its author,
; (c. 320) undertook its defence in another.
we see from Eusebius (I.e.) that he lived after The character of Arius has been severely
the destruction of Jerusalem. It is referred assailed by his opponents. Alexander, bp. of
to in a pseudo-Cyprianic Ep. Hartd. 0pp. Alexandria, in a letter to Alexander of Con-
Cypr. iii. p. 119. If Maximus's information stantinople, describes it in very unfavourable
be correct, Clement's belief that St. Luke was terms. But in those days it was customary
the writer of the Dialogue shews at least that to mingle personal attacks with religious con-
it must have been commonly assigned to a troversies. Arius appears to have been a man
very early date (Routh, Rel. Sac. i. 91-109 ; of ascetic character, pure morals, and decided
Harnack, Alt. Chr. Lit. i. 92 95-97). [s.m.] convictions. It has been stated that his
Arius Apeios) the heresiarch was born in
( action was largely the result of jealousy on
— —
Africa the locality is disputed in a.d. 256. account of his having been a candidate for
the patriarchal throne of Alexandria, when
In his early days he was a pupil of Lucian of
Antioch, a celebrated Christian teacher, and a Alexander was elected to it. But the best
martyr for the faith. By some Arius is said early authorities are doubtful on the point.
to have derived his heresy from Lucian (see He had no doubt a disproportionate number
LuciANus, 12). This statement is made in of female supporters, but there seems no
a letter written by Alexander, bp. of Alex- ground for the insinuation of Alexander of
andria, to bp. Alexander of Constantinople. Alexandria, in the above-mentioned letter,
The object of the letter is to complain of that these women were of loose morals.
the errors Arius was then diffusing. The There appears, however, more foundation for
writer says of Lucian that he lived for the charge that Arius allowed the songs or
many years out of communion with three odes contained in the book called Thaleia —
bishops (Theod. Eccl. Hist. i. 4). But the which he wrote after his first condemnation,
charge is somewhat vague in itself; it is un- in order to popularize his doctrine — to be set
supported by other authority, and Alexander's to tunes which had gross and infamous associa-
language, like that of most controversialists in tions. Nor can he be acquitted of something
past days, is not a little violent. Moreover, like a personal canvass of the Christian popu-
Lucian not stated, even by Alexander him-
is lation in and around Alexandria in order to
self, have fallen into the heresy afterwards further his views.
to
promulgated by Arius, but is accused generally The patriarch of Alexandria has also been
— —
rather ad invidiam, it would seem of the subject of adverse criticism for his action
heretical tendencies. The question of the exact against his subordinate. He too, like his pre-
nature of the relation between the Father decessor Dionysius, has been charged with
and the Son had been raised some 50 years vacillation in his treatment of Arius. Yet it
before the Nicene controversy arose. But the is difficult to see how he could have acted
discussion of it at that time had been in- otherwise than he did. The question, as we
sufficient and unsatisfying. So far as the have seen, had been left unsettled two gener-
earlier controversy could be said to have been ations previously, or, if in any sense it could be
decided, it was decided in favour of the said to have been settled, it had been settled
opinions afterwards held by Arius. But so in favour of the opponents of the Homoousion.
unsatisfactory was that settlement that the Therefore Alexander allowed the controversy
reopening of the question sooner or later was to go on until he felt that it was becoming
practically unavoidable, especially in an dangerous to the peace of the chiurch. Then
atmosphere so intellectual as that of Alex- he called a council of bishops (about 100 in
andria. The reason of the deposition of number), and sought their advice. They de-
Paul of Samosata in a.d. 269 was his cided against Arius. Alexander then delayed
agreement with those who had used the no longer. He acted with resolution as well
word ofj-oovcnos to express the relation of the as promptitude, deposed Arius from his office,
Father and the Son. The expression was at and repelled both him and his supporters from
that time thought to have a Sabellian ten- communion. Then he wrote (the letters are
dency, though, as events shewed, this was extant) to Alexander of Constantinople and
on account of its scope not having been satis- Eusebius of Nicomedia (where the emperor
factorily defined. In the discussion which was then residing), detailing the errors into
then arose on the question, Dionysius, bp. of which Arius had fallen, and complaining of the
Alexandria, had used much the same language danger to the Christian church arising from his
as Arius afterwards held, and a correspondence heresy. It is clear, from Arius's own letter
is extant in which Dionysius of Rome blames (also extant) to Eusebius of Nicomedia, that
his brother of Alexandria for using such lan- Alexander's charges against Arius were in no
guage. Dionysius of Alexandria withdrew, way unfair. The question, as the event has
or perhaps rather explained (see Athan. de shewn, was a vital one, and plainly called for
Decret. Syn. Nic. c. 25), the expressions com- an authoritative decision,, Arius taught (i) :

plained of, and posterity has been inclined to that the Logos and the Father were not of the
blame him for vacillation. Whether this accu- same ovcrla (essence) (2) that the Son was a
;

sation be just or not, it is quite clear that the created being {Krla/xa or Troir]/j.a) and (3)
;

position in which a question of such supreme that though He was the creator of the worlds,
importance was left by the action of Dionysius and must therefore have existed before them

42 ARIUS ARIUS
and before all time, there was — Arius refused Sei'repoj (or Sevreptviov) deos. Origen (see
to use such terms as XP*^""' or aluv —when He his de Principiis, I. ii. 6, 12) had also niade
did not exist. The subsequent controversy use of expressions which favoured Arius's
shews that the absence of the words xp^cos or statement that the Logos was of a different
aiwv was a mere evasion, and that when de- substance to the Father, and that He owed His
fending himself he argued in just the same existence to the Father's will. But it is not
manner as though he had used those words. sufficiently remembered that the speculations
Moreover, he asserted that the Logos had an of Origen should be regarded as pioneer work
in theology, and that they were often hazarded
apxv (beginning) yet not only Athanasius,
in order to stimulate further inquiry rather
;

but Origen before him, had taught that the


than to enable men to dispense with it. This
relation of the Son to the Father had no
explains why, in the Arian, as well as other
beginning, and that, to use Dorner's words
controversies, the great authority of Origen is
(Person of Christ, ii. 115), "the generation of
so frequentiv invoked by both sides.
the Son is an eternally completed, and yet an The Christian church had by this time
eternally continued, act " i.e. the Father has,
become so powerful a force in the Roman
;

from all eternity, been communicating His world that Constantine, now sole emperor,
Being to the Son, and is doing so still. found himself unable to keep aloof from the
Arius was obviously perplexed by this doc-
lor he complains of it in his letter to the
controversv. He was the less able to do so
trine,
in that he had himself been brought up under
Nicomedian Eusebius, who, like himself (see Christian influences. [Constantine.1 He
above), had studied under Lucian, in the therefore sent the venerable Hosius, bp. of
words, deiyevvrjs eariv a.'yevvriToyevrjs idTiv. It Cordova, a man who had suffered cruelly on
;

is unquestionably to be lamented that so much


behalf of his faith, on a mission to Egypt, with
stress should have been laid in the contro- instructions to put an end, if possible, to the''
versy on words which, when used, not popu- controversy. But as it continued to rage,
larly, but in metaphysical discussions, had a Constantine took a step hitherto unprece-
tendency to confound the eternal generation dented in Roman history. Republican Rome
of the Son with the purely physical process of course had her free institutions, and the
of the generation of men and animals. The Christian church had been accustomed to
latter is a single act, performed at a definite determine matters of faith and practice in
moment in time. The former is a mysterious, her local assemblies. But anything like a
eternal process, for ever going on. Had the council of delegates, summoned from all parts
defenders of the Nicene doctrine made more of the empire, had been hitherto unknown.
general use of the term communication of Such an assembly Constantine determined to
Being, or Essence, they would have made it call together. All the secular dioceses into
clearer that they were referring to a continual which the empire had been for some time
and unchangeable relation between the First divided, Britain only excepted, sent one or
and Second Persons in the Trinity, which bore more representatives to the council. The
a very slight analogy indeed to the process majority of the bishops came from the East, but
which calls inferior creatures into existence. there was, nevertheless, an imposing display of
Moreover, Arius contended that the Son was men of various races and languages. Sylvester
unchangeable (S-rpewTos). But what he thus of Rome, himself too aged to be present,
gave with the one hand he appears to have sent two presbyters as his delegates. The
taken away with the other. For so far as we object of the council, it must be remembered,

can understand his language on a subject was not to pronounce what the church ought
which even Athanasius seems to have admitted to believe, but to ascertain as far as possible
to have been beyond his power thoroughly to what had been taught from the beginning. It

comprehend he taught that the Logos was was indeed a remarkable gathering. There
changeable in Essence, but not in Will. The was not only as good a representation of race
best authorities consider that he was driven to and nationality as was possible under the
this concession by the force of circumstances. circumstances, but the ability and intellect of
[See art. Arius, Followers of.] He was the church were also well represented. There
doubtless confirmed in his attitude by his was Eusebius of Nicomedia, the astute poli-
fear of falling into Sabellianism [Sabellius], tician and man of the world. There was also
which practically represented the Logos as a the renowned Eusebius of Caesarea, a sound
sensuous emanation of the Godhead for the theologian, and perhaps the most well-in-
purpose of carrying out the work of salvation, formed, careful, impartial, and trustworthy
or else as a purely subjective human concep- ecclesiastical historian the church has ever
tion of certain aspects of the Divine Being possessed. Alexander, patriarch of Alexan-
not as an eternal distinction subsisting objec- dria, was also a man of mark. And, young as
tively in the Godhead itself. Arius, while he was, the great Athanasius was already a
opposing the Sabellian view, was unable to host in himself, from his clearness of insight
see that his own view had a dangerous ten- into the deepest mvsteries of our religion.
dency to bring back Gnosticism, with its long .\nd beside these there were men present who
catalogue of aeons. Macedonius, who had manifested the power of faith the brave —
to a certain extent imbibed the opinions of " confessors," as they were called, whose faces
Arius, certainly regarded the Son and the and limbs bore evident traces of the sufferings
Spirit in much the same light in which the they had undergone for
their Master. Nor
a packed
Gnostic teachers regarded their aeons. Yet could any one object that it was
to secure
Arius undoubtedly derived some support assembly. The emperor did his best
from the dangerous language of Origen, who an honest selection and an honest decision.
The council met (325) at Nicaea, in Bithynia,
had ventured to represent the Logos as a

ARIUS ARIUS 43
a town of some importance, on the Sea of after "was Incarnate" {i.e. made flesh
Marmora, near Constantinople. The number of
bishops present is variously stated at from 250
aapKuidivra— a phrase which was felt to be
insufficient and even misleading by itself).
to 318. But the latter number, as typified The anathema which was also added embraces
by the number of Abraham's servants when those who deny that the Son and the Father
he rescued Lot, was generally accepted before
were of one ovaia. or inroaTaais, as well as
the council of Constantinople. No Acts of the those who say that there was a time when the
council are extant. In the writings of two men Son did not exist, or that He was created from
of note who were present, Athanasius, then a
nothing, or that He was liable to change or
young deacon of about 28 years old, and the alteration. At this stage of the controversy the
already celebrated and learned Eusebius of
words ovaLa (essence) and inroaraais (substance)
Caesarea, we have accounts of what hap-
pened. Moreover, well-informed and honest,
were used as synonymous. It will be seen
[art. Arius, Followers of] that Basil and the
if sometimes more or less inaccurate, historians
Gregories afterwards wrung from Athanasius
have studied and handed down documents of
a concession on this point. Athanasius had
great value, bearing on the proceedings.
Constantino himself was present at the
warmly attacked Arius for asserting that there
were three hypostases in the Trinity. But at
council. At first he refused to take part in
its deliberations, or even to take a seat until
the later date it was agreed that' the word
invited. But he afterwards departed from ovffia might be used to denote what was
that humble attitude, if some of our author- common to all three Persons, and virdcrracns
ities are to be trusted, and when he found to denote the distinctions (which we call Per-
difficulties arising, did his best to remove them sons) between them. For the present, however,
by joining in the discussions. At the outset any distinction between ovaia. and inroaraini
he administered a well-merited rebuke to the was considered heretical. The council then
bishops for the spirit in which many of them broke up, after having addressed a letter to
had come to the council. Producing a num- the churches in and around Alexandria.
ber of recriminatory letters from those who Constantine issued a circular letter to the same
were present, he called for a brazier, and burnt effect. Arius, Theonas, and Secundus were de-
them all before the assembly, begging the posed and banished, while three other bishops,
bishops to lay aside their personal animosities, who had displayed leanings toward Arius,
and to devote themselves whole-heartedly to namely Eusebius of Nicomedia, Theognis of
setting forth the truth. The question next Nicaea itself, and Maris of Chalcedon," a city
arose, in what form the universal belief of the on the Asiatic shore opposite Constantinople,
church from the beginning should be ex- were unwilling signatories of the document,
pressed. This, of course, was the crux of the but affixed their signatures in deference to the
whole situation. Hitherto particular churches emperor's wishes. Eusebius of Caesarea de-
had their own forms of creed (TriVrtj) for use scribes himself, in a letter to some Arians who
at baptisms and in catechetical instruction. had accused him of tergiversation, as having
There was no substantial difference between demurred to the changes in the creed which
them, consisting as they did of a confession of he had himself presented, but as having finally
faith in the Trinity, as well as a summary of accepted them in the interests of peace (Theod.
the main facts recorded in the gospels. But H. E. i. 12, from Athan. de Decret. Syn. Nic).
now a dogmatic formula for Christendom had That the apparent unanimity of the council
to be drawn up, a task full of difficulty and (Secundus and Theonas of Lower Egypt being
even of danger. Some few of the bishops, the only dissentients) covered a considerable
we learn, apparently under the leadership of amount of divergent opinion is indisputable.
Eusebius of Nicomedia, presented a document Doubts of the wisdom of employing a term
so frankly Arian that it was at once torn to which had been rejected at an important
pieces by those present, and Arius was ex- council as savouring of Sabellianism weighed
communicated by all but Theonas and on the minds of many who had submitted.
Secundus. Then, as it seems, the famous Eusebius of Caesarea has been charged by
scholar and ecclesiastical historian Eusebius many later writers as having coquetted with
of Caesarea intervened, and produced a Pales- Arianism. But his moderate attitude through-
tinian Creed, which he said he had received out the period which followed proves that his
from ^" the bishops before him." He adds objections to the decision, which he allowed
that " no one present could gainsay " the his love of peace to overrule, were more owing
orthodoxy of this creed. This statement to the dread of possible consequences than
must, however, be taken with some limita- to the decision in itself. Though a man of
tions. The Palestinian Creed could only, if ability, learning, and honesty, he was timorous
accepted, have been accepted as a basis for withal, and desirous to stand well with the
discussion. It was not ultimately adopted in powers that be. And his allusion to the pro-
the shape in which it was propounded, but ceedings at Nicaea in the letter just mentioned
underwent considerable alteration. The sen- shews that his apprehensions were not alto-
tence yevvr)d^i/Ta eV rod Ilarpdj fjLovo-YevTJ was gether unreasonable. For he remarks how it
made^ definitely TovTeanv sk ttjs ovaias tou was elicited after considerable discussion at
Uarpos. Further on, the words ofj-ooOaiov tco the council that the term 6/j.oovcrt.ov was not
narpl were added after the words intended to signify that the Son formed an
"be- actual portion (nepos) of the Father. That
gotten, not made." And the word ^j'av^pwTn)-
craj/ra, which means
would have been Sabellianism pure and simple,
rather more than " made a danger against which it was necessary to
man and implies an intimate association of guard. And much of the dissension to which
'

the Godhead with the Manhood, was


added the adoption of the creed of Nicaea led was
44 ARIUS ARIUS
due to this very natural apprehension. But the front, and wrote strongly against Marcellus,
Eusebius emphatically condemned the lan- while the latter sturdily defended himself.
guage of Arius, and there is no reason whatever The actual condemnation of Marcellus was
to suspect his sincerity in so doing. On the deferred till 336, and in the meantime Eusebius

other hand, Athanasius was convinced and of Nicomedia had commenced proceedings

the event proves that he was right that un- against the only rival he really dreaded,
less the Essence of the Son was definitely Athanasius himself. He had, as we have seen,
understood to be the same as that of the contrived the restoration of Arius to the
Father, it would inevitably follow that the emperor's favour by inducing the latter to
Son would at best be no more than the highest write an insincere retractation, and when the
of a series of Gnostic aeons. As to Eusebius emperor, deceived by this manoeuvre, laid his
of Nicomedia, it is clear that Constantine commands on Athanasius to readmit Arius
found some reason to suspect his sincerity, as to communion, Athanasius, naturally, pleaded
well as that of Theognis and Maris, for he soon reasons of conscience against doing so. Then
after included them in the sentence pro- the storm burst forth in all its fulness. The
nounced on Arius. Philostorgius says that accusations of treason against the emperor
Secundus and Theonas predicted that this and the insinuations that the patriarch wished
would happen when they themselves had been to set up an empire of his own against or
sentenced to banishment. Possibly expressions above the supreme authority of the divine
fell from them in the heat of argument which Augustus had certainly some effect on the
led Constantine to the conclusion that their mind of Constantine. Charges were made
submission was not genuine. of sacrilege, tyranny, magic, mutilation,
It must be confessed that the Nicene settle- murder, of immorality (as some allege), and,
ment, though necessary in itself and satis- worst of all in the emperor's eyes, of raising
factory in the end, was at least premature. funds for treasonable objects. They were irr-
The controversy recommenced as soon as the vestigated (if the scenes of violence and passion
decrees were promulgated. When Alexander which took place can be termed an investiga-
died at Alexandria in 327, the election of tion) at a synod of 150 bishops at Tyre (335).
Athanasius in his place was only secured The triumphant vindication of himself by
in the face of violent opposition from the Athanasius at that council, the dramatic
Arianizing faction. Soon after, Eusebius of scenes with which that vindication, according
Nicomedia was reinstated in his see, after to some historians, was accompanied, and the
having written a diplomatic letter to the equally dramatic appeal from his accusers to
emperor. Arius, who had taken refuge in Constantine himself in the streets of Con-
Palestine, was also soon permitted to retvurn, stantinople (which all the accounts describe
after having made a somewhat disingenuous as having taken place), belong rather to the
recantation. So astute a politician as the history of Athanasius than of Arius. [Athan-
Nicomedian Eusebius was not long before he asius.] Suffice it to say that the bold and
regained his influence with the emperor, and decisive action, backed by innocence, of the
then began a series of intrigues which led to great archbishop only succeeded in deferring
a complete reversal of the position of the his fall. The synod of Tyre had already
contending parties. Eustathius of Antioch, issued a condemnation while he was on his
one of the staunchest adherents of Athana- way to Constantinople in order to appeal to
sius, was the first victim. The question the emperor. The emperor, for the moment,
of heterodoxy was skilfully kept in the back- was struck and touched by the appeal and
ground, and a number of false and odious by the commanding personality of Athan-
personal charges were trumped up against asius. But Eusebius proved ultimately to be
him by men and women of abandoned lives. master of the situation. With consummate
If Theodoret is to be trusted, one of the dexterity the wily tactician, with the aid of
women aforesaid, when seized by a serious Theognis and Maris, his old associates, as well
illness, retracted her accusation in a remark- as of the arch-intriguers Ursacius and Valens,
ably sensational manner. But the other his- of whom we shall hear so much in the next
torians (Socrates and Sozomen) are reticent article, contrived that the old charges of
about the nature of the charges, and only tell ecclesiastical offences should be dropped, and
us that Eustathius had been unfortunate that fresh charges of interference with the
enough to get involved in a controversy secular affairs of the empire should be sub-
with Eusebius Pamphili (of Caesarea). Eusta- stituted for them. Accordingly, Athanasius
thius was at once ejected from his see, and was now charged with detaining the corn
was regarded by the emperor as having been which was ordered to be sent from Egypt to
the cause of the riot his expulsion excited Constantinople. The artifice succeeded. Con-
among the people, with whom Eustathius was stantine was weary of the strife. His only
a favourite. Marcellus of Ancyra was the object had been the settlement of the question.
next victim. He had all along been the friend The shape which that settlement took was to
and champion of Athanasius. But unfor- him a secondary matter. He had, as he him-
tunately he was not at home in the thorny self tells us (see his letters to Alexander and
paths of metaphysical theology, and found it Arius in the Life of Constantine by Eusebius
impossible to defend the Nicene decisions Pamphili), a strong objection to idle and word-
without falling into Sabellianism. There was splitting discussions, private or public, and
no need, therefore, for the Arianizers to bring considered them unnecessary and unprofitable.
personal charges against him. Accordingly The measures he had been persuaded to take
few, if any such, were brought. He was at Nicaea had not produced the effect which
charged, and quite fairly, with Sabellianism. he had expected from them. So, like other
On this point Eusebius Pamphili came safely to despots in a similar position, he turned fiercely
;

ARI0S ARIUS, FOLLOWERS OF 45

on those who had induced him to adopt them. contain very valuable information, as does
That it was Athanasius who had advocated the also Dorner's learned and impartial treatise
measures whicli had so palpably failed needed On the Person of Christ. Bp. Martensen's
no demonstration. So he was exiled to Trier History of Christian Dogmatics is also valuable
(Treves), after a number of leading bishops Gibbon's Decline and Fall is useful in giving
had been assembled at Constantinople to try us the secular view of the period. Bp. Kaye's
him, and Alexander of Constantinople was Council of Nicaea will be found worth reading.
ordered to receive Arius back into church De Broglie's L'Eglise et I'Empire romain au
communion. But God had otherwise or- IV" siecle is full of information. Newman's
dained. Alexander was in dire perplexity. A rians of the Fourth Century is marred by some
He dared not disobey the command, neither prejudices and prepossessions. Dean Stanley's
dare he obey it. In his extremity he asked the account of the Nicene council in his Eastern
prayers of the orthodox that either he or Arius Church v/ill be found more picturesque than
might be removed from the world before accurate. Prof. Gwatkin's Studies of Arian-
the latter was admitted to communion. The ism is, as its title implies, rather a series
prayer was, we must admit, a strange one. of sketches than a detailed history, but
But even Gibbon records the incident as a fact, contains a vast amount of original research,
though he makes it the occasion for one of his illuminated by flashes of insight into the char-
characteristic gibes at Christianity and Christ- acters and motives of the principal actors in
ians. Meanwhile, as the historian Socrates the controversy, and gives an exhaustive bib
tells us, Arius was ordered to appear before the liography. His Arian Controversy is a brief
emperor, and asked whether he was willing to summary for popular use. There is a valuable
sign the Nicene decrees. He replied, without article in Texts and Studies, vol. vii. (1901), by
hesitation, that he was ready to do so. Asked Mr. Bethune Baker on "The Meaning of Homo-
whether he would confirm his signature by an ousios in the Constantinopolitan Creed." His
oath, he agreed to do this also. This last fact Introduction to the Early Hist, of Christian
Socrates declares {H. E. i. 38) that he had Doctrine (1903) will be found useful, as will the
verified by an inspection of the imperial art. " Arianism" in Hastings's iiMcyc/. of Re-
archives. The very day before the one ap- ligion and Ethics, i. (1908). Harnack, //w/. 0/
pointed for his readmission to communion, Dogma (Eng. trans. 1894-1899), gives the
Arius died suddenly, and in a most remark- modern German view. [J-J-l.]
able manner. Whether his death can be Arius, Followers of. After the deaths of
described as a miracle or not may be dis- Arius and Constantine we enter on a tangled
puted. It seems preferable to attribute it to web of controversy which lasted from a.d. 336
natural causes. But that the event was one to 381, when the question was finally decided
of the numerous occasions in history when we by the acceptance of the Nicene Creed at the
are compelled to recognize a Divine inter- council of Constantinople. This period of
position can hardly be doubted. The extra- confusion is due to the change of conditions
ordinary occurrence made a vast impression under which the contest was carried on. For
throughout Christendom. The heresiarch a time the division of the empire between
had only been able to obtain the decree for three Augusti contributed an additional ele-
readmission to communion by a feigned ment of uncertainty to the conflict. Yet when
adherence to the Nicene symbol. His posi- the deaths of the younger Constantine and his
tion was, therefore, in the eyes of Christendom brother Constans left the whole empire for

one of gross and palpable deception nothing eleven years in the hands of Constantius,
less than an act of glaring and defiant impiety. matters were scarcely less involved. Con-
Socrates tells us that in his time, a century stantius, though by no means devoid of
afterwards, the place where he died was still ability, as his success in maintaining his un-
pointed out. Athanasius himself describes divided authority against such rebellions as
the incident (ie MorteArii). There are there- those of Magnentius and Vetranio proves, was
fore few facts in history more fully attested. far inferior to his father in clearness of vision
The tragic death of Arius, followed as it was a and breadth of aim. The great Constantine
year later by that of Constantine himself, led himself was not altogether inaccessible to
to a temporary lull in the controversy. Theflattery and family influences. His sister
sequel will be found in the next article. Constantia is credited with having prevailed

Bibliography. (i) Ancient. The writings upon him to allow Eusebius of Nicomedia and
of Athanasius generally, especially his de In- Arius to return from exile. But her influence
carnatione Verhi Dei and de Decretis Synodi was still more strongly felt in the next reign,
Nicenae; the Vita Constantini of Eusebius and after the death of the astute and able
Pamphili; and the ecclesiastical histories of Eusebius of Nicomedia, mere intriguers, such
Socrates, Sozomen, and Theodoret. Of these as Ursacius and Valens, and even the worth-
the first is the best, though the documents less eunuchs about the court, were able to
cited at length by Theodoret are valuable. persuade the emperor into unreasonable and
English translations of these authors, save of tortuous courses, of which jealousy of the
quite recent date, are by no means implicitly great Athanasius formed in reality the secret
to be trusted, especially as to metaphysical motive. Amid all the distractions of the
terms. The ecclesiastical history of Philo- time, three main stages may be marked in the
storgius, which would give us the Arian point progress of the controversy. The first con-
of view, is unfortunately only known to sisted of the six years between the death of
us through a hostile epitome by Photius, Constantine and the council of Sardica (343)-
patriarch of Constantinople in gth cent. During this period the attitude of all the
(2) Of comparatively modern works the various parties save those who adhered to
church histories of Neander and Gieseler the Nicene symbol is most perplexing, and

46 ARIUS, FOLLOWERS OF Arius, followers of


the changes of opinion most bewildering. knowledge of Church history, as well as the
Court intrigue occupies a prominent place in experience and judgment, of his celebrated
the history. Yet it gradually became clear, as predecessor. Athanasius fled to Rome, and
far as the march of opinion was concerned, thus brought its bishop Julius on the scene.
that the West was irrevocably attached to Julius acted with spirit and discretion. He
the views of Athanasius, while in the East summoned a synod of 50 bishops of the
opinion was divided and variable, and the West, who annulled the deposition of
court influence grew more decisive on the Athanasius, and acquitted him of all the
progress of events in proportion as the power charges against him. He further trans-
of Constantius increased. The second period mitted to Antioch a strong remonstrance
was that between the councils of Sardica and against the inconsistency and unfairness of
Ariminum (Rimini, in Italy) in 359, during the proceedings at the council held there.
which opinion was gradually settling down into The Eastern bishops, however, were not to be
three distinct forms, which may be roughly de- deterred from their course by his representa-
scribed as the orthodox, the semi-Arian, and tions. At the council held at the dedication
the Arian view. The last period, that between (encaenia) of a church at Antioch in 341, the
359 and 381, is that during which Homoean- sentence on Athanasius was confirmed, and
ism and Anomoeanism (see below) became after the rejection of a creed of distinctly
gradually discredited, while Homoiousians and Arian tendencies, a new creed, either com-
orthodox approximated by degrees, until the posed by Lucian the Martyr or by his disciple
final victory of the Nicene symbol at Con- Asterius, was brought forward as a substitute
stantinople. The ferment of opinion may be for the symbol of Nicaea. It rejected the
gauged by the fact that the historian Socrates expression o/j-oovcnov, but it as emphatically
gives no less than ten forms of creed eleven rejected Arianism by declaring the Son to be
if we count that presented at Nicaea by Euse- unchangeable and unalterable, and by adding

bius of Caesarea which were produced at that He was " the Image of the essence,
various councils in hope of settling the con- the power, the will, and the glory of the
troversy. But the Nicenes remained firmly Father." But Eusebius had not thrown over
attached to the creed of Nicaea, while their the symbol of Nicaea for such a halting sub-
opponents were divided into three groups the — stitute as this. On the other hand, Athan-
Anomoeans, or Arians proper, who taught the asius did not fail to point out that the language
unlikeness of the nature of the Son to that of of the creed of Lucian was not more that of
the Father ; the Homoeans, who believed the Scripture than was the language of the creed
Son's nature to bear only a general resem- of Nicaea. The court party, whose object
blance to that of the Father; and the Homoi- was simply to produce a formula which would,
ousians, who believed in the similarity (but as they thought, meet the emperor's views by
not the identity) of the essence of the Son to putting a stop to controversy, endeavoured to
that of the Father. These last are also called force another creed on the council, but in vain.
semi-Arians. This additional creed was a compromise pure
The first important step in the history of and simple, enshrining no truth, although in
the controversy after the death of Arius form corresponding as nearly to the Nicene
was the return of Athanasius to his diocese formula as possible. Its supporters then put
(337) permitted by Constantine II., in the document into the hands of Constans,
whose division of the empire Egypt lay. emperor of the West, who had demanded the
But he was not suffered to remain long un- assembling of another general council. The
molested. In 340 Constantine II. died, and West had been roused by the proceedings at
Eusebius of Nicomedia, the ablest of Athan- Antioch, and Constantius, now engaged in a
asius's antagonists, contrived to get himself war with Persia, dared not refuse. The able
removed to Constantinople after the death of leader of the dissentients, however, Eusebius
the bishop, Alexander. His proximity to the of Nicomedia, was now dead, and the leader-
emperor secured to him the leading influence ship had fallen into the hands of Ursacius
in affairs ecclesiastical. The orthodox party and Valens, who were mere opportunists. To
had elected Paul as their bishop, but Eusebius their dismay and that of their party, it was
contrived to get this election annulled, and settled that the council should be held at
to secure the vacant post for himself. He Sardica, in Dacia, just within the limits of the
" left no stone unturned," as the historian Western empire. Thither, in 343, the de-
Socrates puts it, to overthrow one whom he puties repaired. But the courtiers perceived
had long regarded as a rival. A council was that there was no chance whatever of forcing
assembled at Antioch (338-339), in which the their views upon a phalanx consisting, as it
old charges were revived against Athanasius, is now thought, of about 100 Western bishops
and which confirmed his sentence of deposi- devoted to the decisions of Nicaea. So they
tion from his see. Athanasius was expelled left Sardica in haste, and betook themselves
in the spring of 339 and after a third Eusebius
; to Philippopolis, a city just across the Eastern
(afterwards bp. of Emesa), a man of principle border. There, after declaring that the de-
and character, had declined to take his place, crees of one council cannot be revised by
one Gregory was appointed, who speedily another, they began inconsistently to revise
became unpopular in consequence of his the decrees of former councils, and to hurl
violence and cruelty. Eusebius Pamphili of charges against the venerated Fathers of the
Caesarea, who would undoubtedly, had he West, Hosius and Julius. The Westerns at
survived, have been a moderating force, died Sardica, meanwhile, had once more acquitted
about this time, and was succeeded by Acacius, Athanasius and his allies, and had rejected the
who played a prominent part in the sub- Eastern formulae, as leaning to the Gnostic
sequent proceedings, but lacked the special doctrine of successive emanations from the

I

ARIUS, FOLLOWERS OF ARIUS, FOLLOWERS OF 4?

source of all being. The proceedings at was decidedly disquieting. The Western
Philippopolis and the outrageous conduct of church had found a new champion in
Stephen, then patriarch of Antioch, gave Hilary of Poictiers (HilariusPictavensis), whose
offence even in the East, and the decision of ability, learning, and high character were
the Western bishops to hold no communion recognized by his own contemporaries. Con-
with their Eastern brethren while the existing stantius shewed his sense of his abilities
state of things lasted produced a reaction. by exiling him, as well as Liberius, bp. of
Another council was held at Antioch, and a Rome, who had succeeded Julius (355). Early
new and more conciliatory creed, usually in 356 the imperial troops burst into the
called yuax-pocTTtxos, from its exceeding length, cathedral at Alexandria to seize Athanasius,
was substituted for the Lucianic document. who was at prayer with his flock. It was
As Constans pressed for the restoration of night, and Athanasius almost miraculously
Athanasius, and Constantius had the war escaped in the tumult, and remained secreted
with Persia still on hand, the latter gave way, for some time. From his undiscovered re-
the more readily because Gregory the intruder treat he issued numerous letters and treatises,
was now dead (345)- Constantius summoned by which he kept up the courage of his
Athanasius to his presence, and after a friendly adherents. His Arian successor, one George,
interview dismissed him, and wrote three did not venture to set foot in Alexandria till
letters, one to the bishops and clergy in a year after the departure of Athanasius,
Egypt, one to the laity, and one to the and his atrocious cruelties soon made him
governors of provinces, explaining that it was hated as well as feared by the populace.
his will that Athanasius should be allowed to Meanwhile the court intriguers resumed their
return in peace to his flock. But when he activity. Sirmium, in Slavonia, between the
demanded of Athanasius that he should allow Save and the Drave, now takes the place of
the use of one church to the Arians in Alex- Antioch in the matter of creed-making. A
andria, the latter preferred a request in his creed had already been issued thence in 351
turn that the same thing should be done in against Sabellianism. In the latter part of
cities where the Arians were in possession 357 the emperor was in residence there, and
a request which Constantius did not deem Ursacius and Valens naturally took the oppor-
it prudent to grant. Athanasius therefore, tunity of renewing their mischievous activity.
unfettered by conditions, returned (346) to A second creed was promulgated there, in
Alexandria, and the people, wearied of Arian which the difference between the Father and
violence and cruelty, received him with the the Son was strongly insisted upon the ;

warmest demonstrations of joy. Father and the Son were declared to be two
Peace was thus restored for the moment, Persons {irpdcrujwa), and the use of the words
but it endured only so long as Constantius ovcria and virocrTaaLi, as applied to God's
was occupied with foreign war and intestine nature, was condemned, as not warranted by
strife. It is noteworthy that the restless Scripture. The intriguers no doubt imag-
intriguers, Ursacius and Valens, found it ined that, as the supporters of the Nicene
prudent just at present to repair to Rome and formula were in exile, they could give no
make friends with Julius and the West. further trouble, and that the line of least
Socrates {H. E. ii. 37) remarks on their dis- resistance would be to come to an arrangement
position to identify themselves with the with the Arian (Anomoean) party. But
strongest side. But permanent peace was events proved them utterly wrong. The re-
impossible until the questions at issue had sult was just the opposite : to convert the
been fully threshed out. As soon as Constans moderates into a distinctly semi- Arian party,
(350) was dead, and Magnentius, the usurper, laying especial stress on the likeness of the
defeated and slain (353), the strife recom- Son's essence {o/j.oiovcnoi') to that of the Father,
menced. For ten years Athanasius had
instead of minimizing the likeness, as the
remained undisturbed at Alexandria, but
premonitory signs of the eruption which
Homoeans had done. The Homoiousians
thus began to lean to the orthodox side, while
was soon to burst forth had long been dis-
the Homoeans inclined more and more to
cernible. On the one hand the Easterns were
those who denied even the likeness of the Son's
beginning to substitute the semi- Arian doctrine
essence to that of the Father. Hilary now
of the likeness {6/xoiovcnos) of the Son to the
(359) intervened with his de Synodis, in which
Father for the vaguer conception of the he reviewed the action of previous councils,
more moderate Arians of the earlier period. and defended the Nicene Creed, yet in such a
On the other hand, the Mwlikeness of the way as he thought best calculated to win back
Son to the Father was more boldly and de- the semi-Arians (or Homoiousians) to the
fiantly pressed by the holders of that doctrine,
orthodox camp. This treatise marks the
and by degrees a sect, which almost reduced stage in the controversy in which semi-
Christ to the level of a mere man, appeared
Arianism began definitely to separate itself
on the scene. The chief exponents of this
from its doubtful allies, and to draw towards
doctrine were Aetius and Euzoius. The
Anomoeans now began to separate themselves union with the orthodox party. Hilary, it
more definitely from the orthodox. All this may be added, admits the force of some semi-
was not without its effect on Constantius, Arian objections to the word ofxoovcTlov, and
whose sole object, like that of most poli- suggests certain express limitations of its
ticians, was to avoid dissensions. When the meaning. Two other creeds of considerable
tide turned, Ursacius and Valens were ready, length, one of them provided with innumerable
as usual, with suggestions. But he could not anathemas, were drawn up at Sirmium. The
at once take the steps they urged. New wars last of these, commonly known as the dated
confronted him, and the attitude of the West creed (359), was ridiculed by Athanasius for
48 ARIUS, FOLLOWERS OF AMUS, FOLLOWERS OF
its pompous opening, and for its assumption Among those who were present at this council
that the Catholic faith had, at the date given, were men so diverse as the hated tyrant
been proclaimed for the first time. It is George of Alexandria, and Hilary of Poictiers,
clear, he adds, from their own confession, still exiled from his diocese. Meanwhile, Ur-
that theirs is a new faith, not the old one. sacius and Valens were engaged in the con-
We now enter upon the last stage of the con- genial task of endeavouring to persuade the
troversy. It is marked by the first attempt to deputies from Ariminum to sign yet another
make a distinction between ovala and L-Troa-T-airts creed at Nike in Thrace, in the hope, if some
— terms which had hitherto been regarded as authorities are to be trusted, of making the

synonymous and to use the former as in- world believe, from the similarity of names,
that it was the renowned document promul-
dicating the nature which is common to beings
of the same order, while the latter was used gated at the Nicene council. But this was
to express the diversities between these pos- surely an impossibility. The Nicene symbol
sessors of a common nature. The word ova'ia was far too well known to the Christian world.
was used to indicate the Divine Nature, Athanasius now intervened from his retreat,
while vTrocTTacns was henceforth used by the and wrote his famous treatise de Synodis,
Greeks of the Persons in the Trinity. in which he reviewed the creeds and acts
(It
should, however, be observed that substantia of the various councils. But he assumed no
remained the Latin equivalent of ovaia.) non-possumus attitude. He had even seemed
inclined, for a moment, to admit the ortho-
The first to press this use of language
was Basil of Ancyra, at a council he had doxy of the expression oixoiovaiov. But in this
called to protest against the proceedings at treatise he points out (c. 41) that though brass
is like gold, tin like iron, and the dog like the
Sirmium. He defends the new use of the
wolf, yet they are of different natures, and no
word viroaraiais in an able minute he issued,
criticizing the proceedings at Sirmium, by
one could call the wolf the offspring of the
pointing out that a word was needed and it— dog. Nevertheless, he still endeavours to
bridge over the gulf between himself and the

must be neither ovala nor apxv to denote the
semi-Arians.
underlying and definitely existing (vvapxovaa^i) These two councils were the final turning-
distinctions [ISibTfjTas) of the Persons {irpoadi- point of the controversy. It had clearly
TTuv) ;and he acutely remarks that if ovala appeared that, whenever the Nicene defini-
was a term not to be found in Scripture, the tions had been rejected, Anomoeanism, which
Godhead was indicated there by the words was Arianism in a more definite philosophical
6 djj/. In the end, this new and more careful use shape, came once more to the front, and this
of words completely revolutionized the situa- fact was increasingly seen to point to the
tion. Henceforth the semi-Arians as a body not Nicene symbol as the only safe way out of the
only laboured for an understanding with the difficulty. Henceforth the secular authority
orthodox, but also drew still more markedly might retard, but it could not prevent, the
apart from the Homoeans and Anomoeans. victory of Athanasius and his followers. From
The calling of a new council in the same year at this moment (seeSocr. H. E. ii. 22) the
Rimini (Ariminum) in Italy brought these new Western churches definitely renounced com-
tendencies very plainly to light. Constantius, munion with those of the East. The episode
finding it impossible to lay down a common of Meletius of Antioch (not to be confounded
basis for action between the East and the with Meletius of Egypt^ shewed plainly which
West, commanded the Eastern bishops to way events were tending. He had been
meet at Seleucia in Cilicia, a mountain fortress elected patriarch of Antioch by the Homoean
near the sea. Sozomen tells us that the party. But in his inaugural speech he frankly
reason for calling this council was the growing confessed his Nicene leanings, and when a
influence of Anomoeanism through the in- busy archdeacon rushed up and closed his
fluence of Aetius. The Western bishops, who mouth, he continued by gestures to affirm
numbered more than 200, had no scruples in what he had previously affirmed by his voice.
the matter. They boldly deposed Ursacius Meletius was promptly banished, but before
and Valens, who had been sent to bring them the year (361) was over Constantius was dead.
to submission, and as boldly reaffirmed the The action of his successor Julian, who had
Nicene symbol, and they sent a deputation renounced Christianity, gave a still further
of 20 bishops to the emperor to defend their impulse to the policy of conciliation. As
action. He was, however, (or pretended to between heathenism and Christianity, impar-
be) too busy to see them. The Easterns tiality cannot certainly be predicated of him.
were still inclined to hesitate. The semi- But he was impartial enough in his hostility
Arian majority desired to accept the Nicene to Christians of all shades of opinion. This
Creed, with the omission of the obnoxious threw them, for the time, into one another's
dfioouaiof. The Homoeans, under the leader- arms. True, when the external pressure was
ship of Acacius of Caesarea in Cappadocia, removed, the suspicions and jealousies, as is
condemned the expressions ofMOovaLoi' and commonly the case, broke out afresh. But
ofioLovaiov, but anathematized the expression
none the less had an impulse been given
" The Acacian [Homoean] party "
towards union which henceforth never ceased
dv6/j,0L0v.
to be felt. The oppressor George had been
(Socr. H. E. ii. 40) "affirmed that the Son was expelled from Alexandria by a rising of the
like the Father as respected His will only, populace as early as 358. In 361, on his
and not in His substance or essence." And return to Alexandria, he was seized and
they tendered yet another creed in accordance murdered by his exasperated flock. The edict
with these views, which the council rejected, of Julian (361) permitting the return of the
and deposed those who had tendered it. exiles left the way open to Athanasius to rejoin
ARIUS, FOLLOWERS OF ARNOBIUS 49
his people. He at once {362) summoned a acquitted, but his school disappeared with him
council, in which Macedonianism [Macedo- (he died in 371), and the way lay clear for
Nius], an offshoot from Arianism which applied the conciliatory action of the three great
the same line of argument to the Holy Spirit Eastern leaders already mentioned. There
which had previously been applied to the Son, was no theologian in Christendom who could
was condemned as well as Arianism. But withstand them. Among their opponents no
Athanasius was wise and liberal enough to concert reigned, but only confusion their
;

make overtures to the semi-Arians. Three ascendancy was founded on court intrigue and
men almost worthy to stand on a level with imperial violence. Sozomen (H. E. vi. 6) tells
Athanasius himself had appeared among the us how Valentinian, while he stedfastly clung

Eastern bishops men who were capable of to orthodoxy, studiously refrained from har-
negotiating on equal terms with that great assing those opposed to it, and notes with
and prescient theologian. These were Basil, disapproval the different course taken by
afterwards bp. of Caesarea in Cappadocia, Valens. The cause of genuine, practical
his brother Gregory, bp. of Nyssa, and the Christianity suffered seriously imder these
brilliant orator, poet, and thinker Gregory divisions, intrigues, and acts of violence, and
OF Nazianzus, who was the intimate friend men of earnest and even indifferent minds were
of both. These men had some opinions in longing for peace. When Theodosius suc-
common with the less extreme members of the ceeded Valens in 379 (Valentinian was already
semi-Arian party, and were therefore quite dead) there was no force strong enough
ready to resume the work of conciliation which, among the heretical factions to resist the
as we have seen, had been attempted by Basil coalition between the semi-Arians and the
of Ancyra. Athanasius, on his part, was ready Nicenes. The West was united in support of
to accept the distinction mentioned above the latter, the strength and patience of the
between omla and viroaTacris, which had not divided East were exhausted. A council of
been recognized at Nicaea. IJefore the death — —
150 bishops all Easterns assembled at
of Jovian (364), Acacius of Caesarea, who Constantinople, and the weary 56 years of
cannot be acquitted of being an unworthy conflict and confusion terminated in the
intriguer or at best a time-server, came for- acceptance of the symbol * which, in the East
ward to make his peace by accepting the and West, is repeated whenever Christians who
Nicene formula. On tlie death of Jovian profess the Catholic faith meet for communion
the empire was divided between Valentinian with one another and their Lord. Arianism
and Valens, the former taking the West, the had no moral strength with which to resist
latter the East, under his charge. Valen- persecution. But it still lingered among the
tinian, as a man unacquainted with theology, Goths for some centuries. They were not an
was naturally influenced by the general educated race, and Ulphilas, who converted
opinion in the West, which had remained them to Christianity, was a missionary rather
decisively Nicene. Valens as naturally fell than a theologian. And so it came to pass
under the influence of the Eastern bishops, in the end that, so far as this vital doctrine of
and the time was not yet ripe for their accept- the Christian faith is concerned, " they all
ance of the Nicene decision. The Anomoeans escaped safe to land."
were still a powerful party, and so deter- The bibliography of this period is much the
mined were they to enforce their views that same as has been given in art. Arius, only
they persecuted not only the orthodox but that the Life of Constantine, by Eusebius Pam-
the semi-Arians and Macedonians. When the phili, is of course no longer available. The
serni-Arians, with the permission of Valen- de Synodis of Athanasius passes in review the
tinian, held a council at Lampsacus in 364, various councils and their creeds, from the
its decisions were set aside by Valens, whose Encaenia at Antioch to the councils of
hand had already been heavy on the Homo- Ariminum and Seleucia. Various mono-
ousians, and who now exiled the semi-Arian graphs connected with the history of this
bishops. Four years later he dealt equally period will be found mentioned by Prof.
harshly with the Macedonians, who were Gwatkin in his Studies of Arianism, if the
terrified into imploring the help of the ortho- student wishes to go more deeply into the
dox West, and endeavoured to secure it by subject than is possible here. [J-J-l.]
promising Liberius that they would receive the Arnobius, an eminent Latin apologist for
Nicene Creed. But the latter replied in a Christianity. The records of his life are
letter in which he declared that the faith meagre and somewhat uncertain consisting
;

depended on the acceptance of the words in a few brief notices by St. Jerome, and
hypostasis (in the sense in which it is used another by Trithemius, aided by his own few
in the Nicene formula) and homoousios. On incidental allusions to himself.
the other hand, the dissensions which broke The outbreak of the last great persecution
out between Eudoxius, patriarch of Antioch (303-313) found Arnobius a professor of
and afterwards of Constantinople and his rhetoric at Sicca, in Africa. His reputation
Arian (or Anomoean) allies, drove both him was high, and his pupils numerous and
and Valens into the arms of the Homoeans, distinguished among them was Lactantius.
;

in whose possession most of the churches Arnobius was a sincere pagan versed in
;

were. But the affairs of the empire fell into


_
schemes of philosophy but none the less an
;

confusion in the incompetent hands of Valens, unhesitating and even abject idolator. He
and the influence of the Arian and Homoean was, moreover, active as a lecturer in attacks
parties was steadily waning. Athanasius died upon Christianity. The sight, however, of
in 373, after a noteworthy attempt to cast
* It ends, however, as far as the council of Nicaea
his shield over his faithful supporter and friend
isconcerned, with the words, "And I believe in the
Marcellus. The result was that Marcellus was Holy Ghost."
— ;

60 ARNOBIUS ARNOBIUS
the martyrdoms which followed the edict of outlives the body, but depends wholly on the
Nicomedia appears speedily to have touched gift of God for eternal duration. After death
him and a dream or vision (says St. Jerome)
;
there awaits the evil a second death, a
warned him to submit to Christ. He pre- Gehenna of unquenchable fire, in which
sented himself to the church at Sicca but ; gradually they are consumed and annihilated
" they were afraid of him," and demanded (see especially ii. 15-54). The resurrection
from their late enemy some hostage for of the flesh is emphatically asserted, but in
sincerity. The result was the composition of somewhat obscure terms (ii. 13).
the Disputations against the Pagans whether ; Of the existence of gods he speaks with
in their present form or not. He was there- much ambiguity. The actual objects of
upon baptized, and (according to Trithemius) heathen worship he concludes from the nature
attained the rank of presbyter. Of his sub- of their mythology and ritual to be real but
sequent history we know nothing. Some evil beings. But he nowhere denies that
doubt attaches to the exact date of the con- there exist also dii boni only he views them
;

version of Arnobius and publication of his (if existent) as mere reflexes of the Supreme
treatise. On the whole the evidence points to Nature, and as in no sense distinct objects of
some date between 303 and 313 (Hieron. de worship and prayer. In worshipping the
Scr. Eccl. c. 79 id. in Chronicon Eusebii Supreme (he argues), we worship by implica-
Trithemius, de Scr. Eccl. p. 10 rt).
;

tion — if to be worshipped they are —


such gods
The title of Arnobius's work usually appears as are gods indeed.
as Disputationes adverstis Gentes occasion- ; On the nature and efficacy of prayer he
ally, adv. Nationes. It is divided into seven uses perplexing language. His belief appar-
books of unequal length. The first two are ently is that in the present life all externals
devoted to the defence of Christianity, the are fixed by an immovable destiny (vii. 10) ;

remainder to the exposure of paganism. that prayer is useful only as a means of divine-
Of God, he speaks in the noblest and fullest communion but he yet describes the prayers
;

language of adoration. His existence is of the Christian church as petitions for peace
assumed (i. 33) as a postulate in the argument. and pardon for all classes of mankind the
;

He is the First Cause the Father and Lord ; emperor, the magistrate, the armies, etc. (iv.
of things foundation of all
; author of only ; 36). Prayer is regarded as (in some sense
good unborn omnipresent infinite, incor-
; ; ; not specified) efficacious for the dead (I.e.).
poreal passionless shrouded in light
;
to be
; ; Arnobius asserts the " freedom of the will " ;

known only as the Ineffable (see especially God calls man " non vi sed gratia " (ii. 64).
i. 31). Arnobius hesitates, however, over the In the latter books his arguments against
details of creation thinking apparently that
; heathen sacrifices are so managed as logically
alike the human soul and the lower animals to exclude altogether the sacrifices both of
insects and reptiles are the work of some — the Jewish temple and of the Cross. Of idol-
intermediate creator (ii. 36, 47). worship and incense he speaks in terms which
Of the Lord Jesus Christ he uses the most prove that he can have known nothing of
glowing language. As a man He is the images, or incense, or a local presence, in the
supreme philosopher and teacher, both of conventicula of the Christians.
nature and religion. But He is also God : Of the Holy Scriptures Arnobius appears to
" Deus re certa Deus, homo tamen natus
: have known very little. He makes some
;

Deus interiorum potentiarum Deus sublimis ;


;
acute remarks (i. 58) on the rude style of the
radice ex intima ab incognitis regnis
; ;
evangelists, but only one text (I. Cor. iii. 19) is
sospitator, ab omnium principe missus " His ; quoted verbatim and even this is introduced as
;

pontificium is to give salvation to the soul He ; illud vulgatum (ii. 6). He records apocryphal
is the only path to light His followers alone ; miracles as evangelical (i. 46, 53) he knows
;

are saved He is stronger than fate. Some


; nothing of any promise of temporal happiness
doubt may, perhaps, be thrown over the (ii. 76) ; he confuses the Pharisees with the
extent of these ascriptions of deity by the Sadducees (iii. 12). Of the O.T. he was
vague language with which Arnobius speaks of apparently quite ignorant. In one passage
the gods (see below). But with every de- (iii. 10) he even seems to speak of it with dis-
duction they are magnificent, and at least lie respect ; though the passage has been ex-
in the direction of the fullest orthodoxy. The plained of the Rabbinical books. In many
allusions to the incarnation, life, and death of places he shews by imphcation a total ignor-
the Redeemer are numerous. Ihe first is ance of the national election and the ritual
somewhat vaguely described as the assump- of the Jews (to whom he scarcely alludes at
tion of a man to the self, the God its motive ; all), and of the Scriptural prophecies and
was the presentation of the God to human chronology. These phenomena are, of course,
senses, and the general performance of Christ's in great measure accounted for by the alleged
mission. His resurrection and the subsequent circumstances of the composition of the
appearances are insisted upon it is asserted ; work. They render more remarkable the
(apparently) that He still appears to the faintness of the tinge of Gnosticism in its
faithful. To the Second Advent there is at pages. Obviously the authority of Arnobius
most only a doubtful allusion (i. 39). (See on points of Christian doctrine is reduced
generally, i. 36, 65 ; ii. 60.) almost ad nihilum by these indications and
;

Onthe origin of the Soul he is far more we can hardlv wonder that in the 5th cent,
speculative than is his wont. Its sin, im- his treatise was banished by pope Gelasius
perfection, and inborn infirmity (he holds) to the index of apocryphal works.
forbid the belief that it comes direct from the Critical opinions on the merits of Arnobius
Supreme Cause. It cannot for the like reasons have been very various. St. Jerome's verdict
be immortal {i.e. absolutely and per se) ; it varies between praises of his libri luculeniissimi
;;

ARNOBIUS, JUNIOR ARSACtUS 51

and censure of his defects as inaequalis, niniius, capable of an orthodox interpretation. It


confusus, in style, method, and doctrine. must, however, be allowed that the author of
Dr. Woodham (in his edition of TertuUian's the Commentary is anti-Augustinian as on ;

Apology, preliminary Essays, ed. 1850) pro- Ps. cviii. (cix.) 16, 17, he speaks of the heresy,
tests against the obscurity and neglect which " quae dicit Deum aliquos praedestinasse ad
have attended his name ; holds that his benedictionem, alios ad maledictionem."
" peculiar position and character invest his The Altercatio cum Serapione is a dialogue,
sentiments and reasoning with very singular represented as having been held between
interest and value " pronounces him to be
;
Arnobius and Serapion. Serapion by turns
in some respects " the keenest of the apolo- plays the part of a Sabellian, an Arian, and a
gists," and to be remarkably apposite to the Pelagian, and is gradually driven from each
popular arguments of modern times (pp. 21, position. Considerable learning is displayed
29. 52, 53)- and a clear apprehension of the points at
To the whole of this verdict we subscribe. issue, combined with much real ingenuity of
Arnobius presents as a man a mind and argument. The circumstance of Arnobius
character combining much ardour with much being the chief speaker does not of course
common sense.His sincerity is eminently prove that the authorship is his, any more
manifest. He has apprehended to a degree than the position of Socrates in certain of the
nowhere and never common the great fact of Platonic dialogues would prove that Socrates
human ignorance. As a writer, he appears as wrote them. Moreover, just as we cannot
the practised and facile, but not very fanciful, make Socrates responsible for all that Plato
rhetorician of his time and country and is ; has put into his mouth, so neither can Arnobius
even a master and model of that peculiar junior be justly credited with the tenets here
style of a declining age which consists in a ascribed to him by some unknown author.
subtle medium between the dictions of poetry Both the style and tone of the Altercation
and of prose. seem different from that of the Commentary ;

As a storehouse of old Latinity and of and though there is in both works a con-
allusions to points of antiquity —
to heathen sentient rejection of the errors condemned in
mythology and ceremonial to law, educa-
; the first four general councils, yet it is hardly
tion, and amusements —
his work is of the possible that an author of semi-Pelagian
greatest interest and importance. leanings, who had stigmatized predestinarian
The following editions of Arnobius may be doctrine as a heresy, should declare, as Arno-

mentioned: 1816, Leipz., J. C. Orellius (ex- bius is made to do towards the conclusion of
cellent for a full and learned commentary) the Altercatio cum Serapione, that he " accepts
Halle, 1844, ed. G. F. Hildebrand; Paris, and defends the dicta of St. Augustine con-
1844, Migne's Patr. Lat. Reifferscheid,
; cerning Pelagianism, as if they were the most
Vienna, 1875 [Corpus Script. Eccl. Lat. iv.). hallowed writings of the Apostles."
For an Eng. trans, see Ante-Nicene Lib. The Notes on some passages of the Gospels,
(T. &.T. Clark). [h.c.g.m.] which seem really to belong to Arnobius
Arnobius, Junior, a presbyter, or possibly junior, are given in the edition of his works
bp., of Gaul presumed, from internal evid-
; by Laurence de la Barre (Paris, 1639). But
ence of his writings, to have lived at least as for a new view of the authorship of these
late as a.d. 460. works see G. Morin in Revue Benedictine (1903).
The only external notices seem to be those He thinks that the author of the Adnotationes,
of Venerable Bede, who praises his Com- the Altercatio, and the Predestinatusis probably
mentary on the Psalms, and of Alcuin, who an Illyrian, who lived in Rome. Of the
favourably alludes to his Altercation with events of our author's life we are wholly
Serapion in a letter addressed to Flavius ignorant. [j.G.c]
Merius, and in the sixth book of his treatise ArsaciUS, the intruding archbp. of Con-
Contra Felicem Urgelitanum. The internal stantinople, after the violent expulsion of
evidence is based upon the Commentarium in Chrysostom (a.d. 404). He was the brother
Psalmos, the Notes on some passages of the of Nectarius, Chrysostom's predecessor, and
Gospels, and the Altercatio cum Serapione. had served as archpresbyter under Chrysostom
The Commentary and Altercation may both (Photius C. 59). In earlier life his brother had
be found in the Bibliotheca Patrum Maxima selected him for the bishopric of Tarsus, and
(torn, viii.), Lyons, 1677 but the contents
; had attributed his refusal to an ambitious
render it very difficult to believe that the design of becoming his successor at Constanti-
same person was author of both. nople. On this, Palladius asserts, he swore
The Commentary on the Psalms is avowed voluntarily that he would never accept the see
by its author, who dedicates it to Leontius, of Constantinople (Pallad. c. xi.). After he
bp. of Aries, and to Rusticus, bp. of Narbonne. had passed his 8oth year, the success of the
The comments are devout, practical, and base intrigue of Eudoxia and Theophilus
pointed, but brief and uncritical, interpreting against Chrysostom opened an unexpected
everything as referring to Christ and the way for his elevation to the archiepiscopal
church. They are, however, accused of a throne. Eudoxia and the party now trium-
semi- Pelagian tendencv ;and a very learned phant wanted for their new archbishop a
writer, whose Hist. Eccl. appeared c. 1686, facile tool, under whose authority they might
Natalis Alexander, invites special attention shelter the violence of their proceedings.
to remarks of Arnobius upon Pss. 1. ciii. cviii. Such an instrument they had in Arsacius.
and cxxvi. (in the Heb. in A.V., H. civ. Moreover, his hostility to Chrysostom had
;

etc.). But Nat. Alexander was a Jansenist been sufficiently testified at the synod of the
and anti- Jansenist writers, such as the Bollan- Oak, when he appeared as a witness against
dists, might maintain that the majority were him and vehemently pressed his condemna-
:

52 ARSENIUS ARTEMON, ARTEMONITES


tion. He was consecrated archbishop on Arsenius was kept standing while they sat a ;

June 27, 404. Chrysostom, on hearing of it, biscuit was flung at him, which he ate in a
denounced him " as a spiritual adulterer, and kneeling posture. " He will make a monk,"
a wolf in sheep's clothing " [Ep. cxxv.)- The said John and Arsenius stayed with him
;

diocese soon made it plain that they regarded until he had learned enough of the monastic
the new archbishop as an intruder. The life from John's teaching, and then established
churches once so thronged became empty ;
himself as a hermit in Scetis, where he con-
with the exception of a few officials, the de- tinued forty years. His love of solitude
pendants of the court party, and the expect- became intense the inward voice had seemed
;

ants of royal favour, the people of Constanti- to bid him " be silent, be quiet," if he would
nople refused to attend any religious assembly keep innocency. One visitor he even drove
at which he might be expected to be present. away with stones he discouraged the visits
;

Deserting the sacred edifices, they gathered of Theophilus the archbp. and when a high-
;

in the outskirts of the city, and in the open born Roman lady visited him during one of
air. Arsacius appealed to the emperor his occasional sojourns outside the desert, her
Arcadius, by whose orders, or rather those of request to be remembered in his prayers was
Eudoxia, soldiers were sent to disperse the met by the brusque expression of a hope that
suburban assemblies. Those who had taken he might be able to forget her. Whenever he
a leading part in them were apprehended and came into a church he hid himself behind a
tortured, and a fierce persecution commenced pillar ;he even shrank at times from his
of the adherents of Chrysostom. [Olympias brother hermits, remarking that the ten
(2)]. We learn from Sozomen (H. E. viii. 23) thousands of angels had but one will, but rnen
that Arsacius was not personally responsible had many. But with all his sternness, which
for these cruel deeds ;but he lacked strength was coupled with more than the usual mon-
of character to offer any decided opposition to astic austerities, Arsenius could be cordial,^
the proceedings of his clergy. They did what and even tender. His humility was worthy
they pleased, and Arsacius bore the blame. of a follower of Anthony. He was heard to
His position became intolerable. In vain all cry aloud in his cell, " Forsake me not, O
the bishops and clergy who, embracing God ! I have done no good in Thy sight, but,
Chrysostom's cause, had refused to recognize inThy goodness, grant me to make a begin-
him were driven out of the East (Nov. 18, ning." A very famous saying of his referred
404). This only spread the evil more widely. to faults of the tongue " Often have I been

:

The whole Western episcopate refused to sorry for having spoken never for having
acknowledge him, and pope Innocent, who been silent." The Exhortation to Monks,
had warmly espoused Chrysostom's interests, ascribed to him (Combefis, Gr. Patr. Auc-
wrote to the clergy and laity of Constantinople iariuni, i. 301 Galland, Biblioth. vii. 427),
;

strongly condemning the intrusion of Arsacius, exhibits the results of deep spiritual experi-
and exhorting them to persevere in their ence. It warns the monk not to forget that
adhesion to their true archbishop (Soz. H. E. his great work is not the cleansing of the outer
vi. 22, 26). It is no cause for surprise that hfe, but of the inner man spiritual sins, not :

Arsacius's episcopate was a brief one, and carnal only, have to be conquered many a ;

that a feeble character worn out by old age good action has, through the tempter's sublety,
should have soon given way before a storm of become the door to unexpected evil many ;

opposition so universal. He died Nov. 11, who have thought their battle with sin
405 (Socr. H. E. vi. 19 Soz. H. E. viii. 23, accomplished have relapsed through the
;

26 Phot. C. 59 Pallad. Dial. c. xi. Chrys. perilous hearing of other men's sin
; ; ;
" we :

Ep. cxxv.). [E.V.] must keep guard all round."


Arsenius, called "the Great," one of the In 434 Arsenius left Scetis, driven forth by
most famous of the monks of Egypt. He was an irruption of the Mazici. He stayed at
of high Roman family born probably in 354.
; Troe, near Memphis, until 444 then spent ;

He was deeply read in Greek literature. three years at the little island (not the city)
About 383, Theodosius the Great being de- of Canopus returned; to Troe for the two
sirous of finding a suitable instructor for his remaining years of his long monastic life.
sons Arcadius and Honorius, the elder of The Greek church honours him as " our
whom was then about six j^ears old, Arsenius Father, Arsenius the Great," on May 8 the ;

was recommended to him, it is said, by the Latin, on July 19. [w.b.]


Roman bishop, and in this way came into the Artemon, Artemonites, belong to that
service of the best of the Christian Caesars. class of ante-Nicene Monarchians, or Anti-
The time that Arsenius spent at the court trinitarians, who saw in Christ a mere man
came to an end when he was forty years old, filledwith divine power. Of Artemon, or
in 394. A thoughtful and high-souled Roman Artemas, we know very little. He taught in
Christian living under the ascendancy of Rome at the end of the 2nd and beginning
Rufinus might not unnaturally be impelled of the 3rd cent., and was excommunicated
towards monastic seclusion by sheer disgust by pope Zephyrinus (202-217), who, as we
and despair as to the prospects of so-called learn from the Philosophiimena of Hippolytus,
Christian society. He gave up his charge, favoured the opposite error of Patripassianism.
in obedience, as he said, to a voice which He declared the doctrine of the divinity of
bade him " fly from men, if he would be safe." Christ to be an innovation dating from the
Arsenius, arriving at the monastic wilder- time of ZephjTinus, the successor of Victor,
ness of Scetis, begged the clergy there to put and a relapse into heathen polytheism. He
him in the way of salvation by making him a asserted that Christ was a mere man, but born
monk. They took him to abbot J ohn Colobus of a virgin, and superior in virtue to the
(the Dwarfish), who invited them to a meal prophets. The Artemonites were charged
ASTERIUS ATHANASIUS 53
with placing Euclid above Christ, and aban- (Paris, 1648) ;eight on the Psalms, of which
doning the Scriptures for dialectics and mathe- one is found among the works of St. Chrysos-
matics. This indicates a critical or sceptical tom, and the remaining seven were published
turn of mind. The views of Artemon were by Cotelier, Man. Eccl. Grace, ii. (Paris, 1688) ;

afterwards more fully developed by Paul of and two again on other subjects, which are
Samosata, who is sometimes counted with the published among the works of Gregory
Artemonites. The sources of our fragmentary Nyssen, but must be assigned to Asterius on
information are Eusebius, Hist. Eccl. v. 28 ;
the authority of Photius. Besides these
Epiphanius, Haer, Ixv. 1,4; Theodoret, Haer. Photius (Bibl. 271) gives extracts from
Fab. ii. 4 Photius, Biblioth. 48. Cf. Schleier-
; several others. In addition to these homilies,
macher's essay on the Sabellian and Athanasian a Life of his predecessor, St. Basil of Amasea,
conceptions of the Trinity (Works, vol. ii.), and printed in the Acta Sanctorum, April 26, is
Dorner's Entwicklungsgeschichte der L. v. d. ascribed to him. A complete collection of his
Person Christi, 2nd ed. i. 508 ff. [p-s.] works will be found in Migne's Patr. Gk. xl. ;

Asterius (1), a bp. of Arabia (called bp. of a complete list in Fabric. Bibl. Gk. ix. 513
Petra, Tomu^ ad Antioch. § 10). He accom- seq. ed. Harles. An account of their contents
panied the Eusebians to the council of Sar- is given by Tillemont, x. 409 seq.
dica, but separated himself from them along Asterius was a student of Demosthenes (Or.
with bp. Arius or Macarius (who by some II, p. 207), and himself no mean orator. His
confusion is also called bp. of Petra), com- best sermons (for they are somewhat uneven)
plaining of the violent treatment to which display no inconsiderable skill in rhetoric,
the deputies had been subjected, with the view great power of expression, and great earnest-
of driving them into supporting the Eusebian ness of moral conviction and some passages
;

faction (Theod. ii. 8). The Eusebians soon are even strikingly eloquent. His orthodoxy
had their revenge, and the two bishops were was unquestioned. Photius (Amphil. I.e.)
banished to Upper Libya, where they endured contrasts him with his Arian namesake, as
much suffering (Athan. Hist. Arian. § 18 ;
stanch in the faith, devoting himself to the
Apol. § 48). On the promulgation of the care of his flock, and setting an example of
edict of Julian, recalling all the banished a virtuous and godly life. His authority was
bishops, Asterius returned, and (a.d. 362) quoted with great respect in later ages, more
took part in the important council summoned especially during the Iconoclastic controversy
by the newly restored Athanasius at Alex- at the second council of Nicaea, when with a
andria, for the purpose of promoting union play on his name he was referred to as "a
between the orthodox and those who, without bright star (astriim) illumining the minds of
embracing the errors of Arius, had held all " (Labbe, Cone. viii. 1385, 1387, ed.
communion with the Arian party. One of Coleti). Bardenhewer (1908) refers to a
the chief subjects that came before this synod Syllogehisiorica on Asterius by V. de Buck in
was the unhappy schism at Antioch between Acta SS. Oct. (Paris, 1883), xiii. 330-332. [l.]
the Eustathians and the Meletians. [Luci- Athanasius, St., archbp. of Alexandria.
FERUS (1) Meletius Paulinus (6).] On the
; ; The life of Athanasius divides itself naturally
singular fact that the name of Asterius, to- into seven sections, respectively terminated
gether with that of Eusebius of Vercelli, is by his consecration
(i) (2) his first exile ;
;

found among those to whom this letter is (3) his second exile (4) his second return ;
;

addressed, as well as among those by whom it (5) his third exile ; (6) his fourth exile (7) ;

was written, of which it is difficult to give a his death.


satisfactory explanation, cf. Tillemont, Mem. (i) He was born at Alexandria, and had but
viii. p. 707 Baronius, Ann., sub. ann. 362,
; scanty private means (Apol. c. Ar. 51 Socr. ;

§219. [E.V.] iv. 13). We must date his birth c. 296 not ;

Asterius (2), bp. of Amasea in Pontus, a earlier, because he had no personal remem-
contemporary of St. Chrysostom. He him- brance of the persecution under Maximian in
self tells us that his teacher was a certain 303 (Hist. Ar. 64), and was comparatively a
Scythian (i.e. Goth), who, having been sold young man when consecrated bishop, soon
in his youth to a citizen of Antioch, a school- after the Nicene council not later, because
;

master, had made marvellous progress under he received some theological instruction from
his owner's instructions, and won himself a persons who suffered in the persecution
great name among Greeks and Romans (Phot. under Maximian II. in 311 (de Incarn. 56),
Bibl. 271, p. 1500). Beyond this not a single and the first two of his treatises appear to
incident in his life is recorded. His date, how- have been written before 319. There can
ever, is fixed by allusions to contemporary be no reason to doubt that Athanasius
events in his Homilies. He speaks of the became an inmate of bp. Alexander's house,
apostasy of Julian as having happened within as his companion and secretary (Soz. ii.
his memory (Aster. Or. 3, p. 56, ed. Combefis) ; 17). The position involved great advan-
and in his sermon on the Festival of the tages. The place held by Alexander as
Calends (Or. 4, p. 76) he mentions the consulate " successor of St. Mark," and occupant of
and fall of Eutropius as an event of the pre- " the Evangelical throne," was second in
ceding year. This sermon therefore must the Christian hierarchy we may call the bps.
:

have been delivered on New Year's Day, 400. of Alexandria in the 4th cent., for conveni-
Elsewhere he spoke of himself as a man of ence' sake, archbishops or patriarchs, al-
very advanced age (Phot. Amphil. 125 [312]). though the former name was then very rarely
The extant works of Asterius consist almost applied to them, and the latter not at all,
solely of sermons or homilies. Of these we and they were frequently designated, though
possess twenty-two perfect twelve on various
; not in contradistinction to all other prelates,
subjects included in the edition of Combefis by the title of Papas (pope), or " dear father."
54 ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS
Their power throughout the churches of his convictions went thoroughly with the
Egypt, Libya, and Pentapolis was, by ancient adoption of the term " Homoousion " or " co-
custom, which the Nicene council afterwards essential," explained, as it was, in a sense
confirmed, almost monarchical, extending over which made it simply equivalent to " truly
about a hundred bishops, who revered their Son of God," and proposed as a test of adher-
judgments as the decisions of the see of ence to the Scriptural Christology. And if
Rome were revered in Italy. One experience we are to understand his mind at the close of
of a different kind, most fruitful in its con- the council, we must say that he regarded
sequences, was Athanasius's acquaintance its proceedings as something done, in fact,
with the great hermit Anthony. He tells us, " for the rightful honour of Jesus." Nothing
in his Life of Anthony, that he often saw him ;
was to him more certain than that Jesus was,
and although that reading of the conclusion in the full force of the words, God Incarnate;

of the preface, which makes him say that that Arianism was essentially a denial, and
" he himself for some time attended on him, the " Homoousion " the now authenticated
and poured water on his hands," may be con- symbol, of His claim on men's absolute
sidered doubtful, yet we know that he was devotion ; and that it was infinitely worth
afterwards spoken of as " the ascetic," and while to go through any amount of work or
that when, years later, he took shelter in the suffering in defence of such a truth, and in
cells of the monks of Egypt, he found himself the cause of such a Master.
perfectly at home. He contracted an admir- More work was near at hand, and suffering
ation for monasticism, which will not surprise was not far off. A solemn and touching in-
those who remember that the spiritual inten- cident of Alexander's last moments is con-
sity of the Christian life had found a most nected with the history of Athanasius, who
emphatic, though a one-sided expression, in was then absent from Alexandria. The dying
the lives of men who fled, like Anthon}^ from man, while his clergy stood around him,-
a society at once tainted and brutalized called for Athanasius. One of those present,
beyond all modern conception. [Antonius.] also bearing that name, answered, but was not
The two essays of Athanasius, Against the noticed by the archbishop, who again repeated
Gentiles and On the Incarnation, which form the name, and added, " You think to escape
one complete work addressed to a convert — but it cannot be." Some time appears to
from heathenism, cannot be dated later than have elapsed between his death and the
the end of 318 ; for they make no reference to assembling of the Egyptian bishops to con-
the Arian controversy which broke out in 319. secrate a successor. An encyclical letter of
Dorner, in his work On the Person of Christ, these same Egyptian prelates proclaimed to
has given a resume of their argument on the all Christendom, some years later, that a
threefold subject of God, man, and the Incar- majority of them had elected Athanasius in
nate Word ; and Mohler calls the book on the the presence, and amid the applause, of the
Incarnation " the first attempt that had been whole Alexandrian laity, who for nights
made to present Christianity and the chief and days persevered in demanding him as
circumstances of the life of Jesus Christ under " the good, pious, ascetic Christian," who
a scientific aspect. By the sure tact of his would prove a " genuine bishop," and prayed
noble and Christian nature, everything is aloud to Christ for the fulfilment of their
referred to the Person of the Redeemer : desire (Apol. c. Ar. 6). It was granted; and
everything rests upon Him : He appears then, in the words of Gregory, " by the
throughout." The young author seems to suffrages of the whole people, and not by those
have been ordained deacon about this time, vile methods, afterwards prevalent, of force
and placed in the position of chief among the and bloodshed, but in a manner apostolic and
Alexandrian deacons. Among the clergy who spiritual, was Athanasius elevated to the
joined the archbishop in calling on Arius to throne of Mark," some time after the begin-
retract, and who afterwards assented to his ning of May in 326, and very probably on
deposition, was the young archdeacon of June 8.
Alexandria (see the Benedictine Athanasius, {2) From his Consecration (326) to his First
i. 396 seq.).

ander to the Nicene council in 325.



In this spirit he attended Alex- Exile (336). At the outset of his archiepisco-
pate is to be placed the organization of the
In that assembly he is represented by church in Ethiopia or Abyssinia by his con-
Gregory of Nazianzum (Orat. 21) as " foremost secration of Frumentius as bp. of Axum.
among those who were in attendance on [Edesius.] Another event of these com-
bishops," and as " doing his utmost to stay paratively quiet times was Athanasius's
the plague." His writings may assure us of visitation of the Thebaid, a region where
the argument which he would maintain : that much trouble was being caused by the Arians,
the real Divinity of the Saviour was (i) as- and by the Meletians, who resisted his earnest
serted in many places of Scripture, (ii) involved efforts to repress their separatist tendency.
in the notion of His unique Sonship, (iii) re- Now began the troubles from which the
quired by the Divine economy of redemption, Arians never suffered Athanasius to rest till
and (iv) attestedby the immemorial conscious- the last hour of his hfe. It was probably
ness of the church. And although, as he in 330 that he had his first severe experience
himself informs us, the council would willingly of their hatred. After the Nicene council,
have confined themselves to purely Scriptural Constantine had become a zealot for ortho-
terms [de Deer. 19) if their legitimate sense doxy, and Eusebius of Nicomedia had been
could have been bond fide admitted ; although exiled. But Eusebius had procured his recall
too he was far from imagining that any form by orthodox professions ; it may have been
or expression of human thought would by his means that Arius himself was recalled,
adequately represent a Divine mystery ; yet perhaps in Nov. 330. Eusebius now entered
ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS 66
into a league with the Meletians of Egypt, of reprobating his enemies and praising him as
whom a bishop named John Arcaph was the " a man of God " whereupon Ischyras came
;

head. " He bought them," says Athanasius, to him, asking to be received into the church,
" by large promises, and arranged that they and piteously protesting that the Meletians
should help him on any emergency " by that had set him on to assert a falsehood. But he
machinery of false accusation which they had was not admitted to communion and the ;

already employed against three archbishops. story was ere long revived in an aggravated
The charges were not to be theological to : —
form Athanasius himself being now called
attack Athanasius's teaching would be to the perpetrator of the outrage [Apol. 62, 64,
declare against the Nicene doctrine, and this 28, 74, 17, 65, 68).
was a step on which Eusebius could not A darker plot followed. John Arcaph per-
venture. He began by writing to Athanasius suaded a Meletian bishop, named Arsenius,
in behalf of Arius, and urging that, as a man to go into hiding. A rumour was then spread
whose opinions had been seriously misrepre- that he had been murdered, and dismembered
sented, he ought in justice to be received to for purposes of magic, by Athanasius, in proof
church communion. Athanasius's answer of which the Meletians exhibited a dead man's
shews the ground on which he took his stand. hand {Apol. 63, 42 Socr. i. 27 Soz. ii. 25
; ; ;

" It cannot be right to admit persons to com- Theod. i. 30). The emperor was persuaded
munion who invented a heresy contrary to to think it a case for inquiry. Athanasius
the truth, and were anathematized by the received a summons to appear at Antioch and
oecumenical council." It is probable that stand his trial. At first he disdained to take
(as Fleury thinks, though Tillemont and any steps, but afterwards sent a deacon to
Neander date it much later) we should refer to search for the missing Arsenius. The deacon
this period the visit of Anthony to Alexandria ascertained that Arsenius was concealed in a
{Vit. Ant. 69), when he confounded the Arians' monastery at Ptemencyrcis, on the eastern
report that he " agreed with them." This side of the Nile. Before he could arrive there
would be a great support to Athanasius. But the superior sent off Arsenius, but was himself
Eusebius had recourse to Constantine, who arrested by the deacon, and obliged to confess
thereupon wrote, commanding Athanasius to " that Arsenius was alive." At Tyre Arsenius
admit into the church " all who desired it," was discovered. Constantine stopped the
on pain of being removed from his see by sheer proceedings at Antioch on hearing of this
State power. This gave him an opportunity exposure, and sent Athanasius a letter, to be
of laying before Constantine his own views of read frequently in public, in which the
his duty. " There could be no fellowship," Meletians were warned that any fresh offences
he wrote, " between the Catholic church of would be dealt with by the emperor in person,
Christand the heresy that was fighting against and according to the civil law (Apol. 9, 68).
Him." Not long afterwards, in compliance The slandered archbishop had now a
with instructions from Eusebius, three Mele- breathing-time. Arcaph himself " came into
tians, Ision, Eudaemon, and Callinicus, ap- the church," announced to Constantine his
peared before the emperor at Nicomedia with reconciliation with Athanasius, and received
a charge against Athanasius that he had a gracious reply ;while Arsenius sent to his
assumed the powers of the government by " blessed pope " a formal renunciation of
taxing Egypt to provide linen vestments for schism, and a promise of canonical obedience
the church of Alexandria. But two of (Apol. 66, 17, 70, 69, 8, 27).
Athanasius's priests, happening to be at But the faction had not repented. Eusebius
court, at once refuted this calumny and ; persuaded Constantine that such grave scand-
Constantine wrote to Athanasius, condemning als as the recent charges ought to be examined
his accusers, and summoning him to Nicome- in a council ; and that Caesarea would be the
dia. Eusebius, however, persuaded the ac- fitting place. There a council met in 334
cusers to meet him on his arrival with a bolder (see Tillemont, Ath. a. 15 cf. Festal. Epp.
;

charge :
" he had sent a purse of gold to index, for a.d. 334). Athanasius, expecting
Philumenus, a rebel." This, being easily no justice from a synod held under such
overthrown, was at once followed up by the circumstances, persisted, Sozomensays (ii. 25),
famous story of the broken chalice. A certain " for thirty months " in his refusal to attend.
Ischyras, a layman pretending to the character Being at last peremptorily ordered by Con-
of a presbyter, officiated at a little hamlet stantine to attend a council which was to
called " the Peace of Sacontarurum," in the meet at Tyre, he obeyed, in the summer of
Mareotis Athanasius, being informed of this
; 335, and was attended by about fifty of his
while on a visitation tour, sent a priest named suffragans. Athanasius saw at once that his
Macarius, with the actual pastor of the dis- enemies were dominant the presiding bishop,
;

trict, to summon Ischyras before him, but Flacillus of Antioch, was one of an Arian
found him ill. Ischyras, on recovering, succession. Some of the charges Athanasius
attached himself to the Meletians, who, re- at once confuted as to others he demanded
;

solving to use him as a tool, made him declare time. Incredible as it may seem, the dead
that Macarius had found him in church man's hand was again exhibited. Athanasius
" offering the oblations," had thrown down led forward a man with downcast face, closely
the holy table, broken the chalice, and burnt muffled ; then, bidding him raise his head,
the church books of which sacrilege Athan-
; looked round and asked, " Is not this Ar-
asius was to share the responsibility. But senius ? " The identity was undeniable.
Athanasius was able to prove before Constan- He drew from behind the cloak first one hand,
tine at Nicomedia, early in 332, that, point by and then, after a pause, the other and ;

point, it was a falsehood. About mid-Lent he remarked with triumphant irony, " I suppose
returned home with a letter from Constantine no one thinks that God has given to any man

56 ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS
more hands than two." The case of the " brethren," and kept up a correspondence
broken chaHce now remained it was resolved with his friends at home, although at the risk
;

to send a commission of inquiry t o the Mare- of having his letters seized.


otis. Isch\'Tas accompanied the commis- For more than a year Constantine's death
sioners, as " a sharer in lodging, board, and produced no change in Athanasius's position ;

wine-cup " they opened their court in the


;
but at length, on June 17, 338, Constantine II.,
Mareotis. It appeared in evidence that no who in the partition of the empire had a
books had been burned, and that Ischyras certain precedency over his brothers Con-
had been too ill to officiate on the day of the stantius and Constans, the sovereigns of the
alleged sacrilege. An inquiry of such an ex East and of Italy, wrote from Treves to the
parte character called forth indignant protests Catholics of Alexandria, announcing that he
from the Alexandrian and Mareotic clergy, had resolved, in fulfilment of an intention of
one of the documents bearing the date his father, to send back Athanasius, of whose
Sept. 7, 335. The commissioners, disregarding character he expressed high admiration {Apol.
remonstrance, returned to Tyre (Apol. 27, 87). In this he appears to have presumed his
73-76, 17, 13)- brother's consent, and to have then taken
Athanasius, regarding the proceedings of the Athanasius with him to Viminacium, an
council of Tyre as already vitiated {Apol. 82), important town of Moesia Superior, on the
resolved, without waiting for the judgment of high-road to Constantinople. Here the three
such an assembly, " to make a bold and emperors had a meeting, and all concurred in
dangerous experiment, whether the throne the restoration of Athanasius, who, after pass-
was inaccessible to the voice of truth." ing through Constantinople, saw Constantius
Attended by five of his suffragans, he took the a second time, at a farther point on his
first vessel for Constantinople, and suddenly homeward journey, at Caesarea in Cappadocia
presented himself in the middle of the road {Apol. ad Const. 5 ; Hist. Ar. 8). His arrival
when the emperor was riding into the city. at Alexandria, in Nov. 338, was hailed by»
Constantine, on learning who he was, and popular rejoicing : the churches resounded
what was his errand, tried to pass him by in with thanksgivings, and the clergy " thought
silence ; but Athanasius firmly stood his it the happiest day of their lives." But his
ground. " Either summon a lawful council, enemies bestirred themselves, and " did not
or give me opportunity of meeting my accusers shrink from long journeys " in order to press
in your presence." The request was con- on the emperors new charges against him
ceded. The bishops of the council, after that he had misappropriated the corn granted
receiving their commissioners' report, had by by the late emperor for charitable purposes in
a majority condemned Athanasius, and then Egypt and Libya, and that the day of his re-
pronounced Arius orthodox on the ground of turn had been signalized by bloodshed. Con-
a doctrinal statement made five years earlier, stantius wrote to him in anger, assuming the
when they were startled by an imperial letter truth of the former charge but Athanasius
;

expressing suspicion of their motives, and was successful in disproving both. However,

summoning them to Constantinople. Many Constantius who was so soon to be " his
of them, in alarm, fled homewards ; but the scourge and torment " (Hooker, v. 42, 2) fell—
two Eusebii, Theognis, Patrophilus, Valens, more and more under the influence of his great
and Ursacius repaired to court, and, saying enemy Eusebius, now transferred from Nico-
nothing of " the chalice," or the report of the media to the see of Constantinople, which had
commission, presented a new charge, like the been forcibly vacated by the second expulsion

former quasi-political ones that Athanasius of the orthodox Paul. The Eusebians now
had talked of distressing Constantinople by resumed a project which had been found im-
preventing the sailing of Alexandrian corn- practicable while Constantine lived ; this was
ships. " How could I, a private person, and to place on " the Evangelical throne " an
poor, do anything of the kind ? " asked Arian named Pistus, who had been a priest
Athanasius. Eusebius of Nicomedia answered under Alexander, had been deposed by him
by affirming with an oath that Athanasius for adhering to Arius, and had been conse-
was rich and powerful, and able to do any- crated, as it seems (Apol. 24), by a notorious
thing. The emperor cut short Athanasius's Arian bishop named Secundus. It was argued
defence with a show of indignation ; and, that Athanasius had offended against all eccle-
perhaps not from real belief in the charge, but siastical principles by resuming his see in
by way of getting rid of the case and silencing defiance of the Tyrian sentence, and by virtue
the archbishop's enemies in his own interest, of mere secular authority. The charge did
banished him to the distant city of Trier or not come well from a party which had leaned
Treves, the seat of government of his eldest so much on the court and the State ;but it
son Constantine, who received the exile with must be allowed that Athanasius's return had
much kindness, in Feb. 336. given some colour to the objection, although
(3) From his First Exile (336) to his Second he doubtless held that the assembly at Tyre

(340). His life at Treves, including nearly two had forfeited all moral right to be respected as
years and a half, was an interval of rest, much a council. By way of harassing Athanasius,
needed and doubtless invigorating, between the Eusebians, apparently about this time,
the storms of the past and those of the future. made Ischyras a bishop, after obtaining an

He had now to " stand and wait " a new order in the name of the emperor that a church

experience for him. He was " abundantly should be built for him an 01 Jer which failed
supplied with all necessaries " (Constantine II. to procure him a congregation {Apol. 12, 85).
in Apol. 87) he had the friendship of Maxi-
; The Eusebians now applied to the West in
min, the orthodox bp. of Treves, afterweirds behalf of their nominee Pistus. Three clergy
canonized ; he had with him some Egyptian appeared as their envoys before Julius, bp. of
ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS 57

Rome on the other hand,


;
Athanasius sent imbibe from him the theological spirit " and ;

to Rome presbyters to state his case, and an [b) when Gibbon says that " Athanasius intro-

encydic the invaluable document which has

duced into Rome the knowledge and practice
furnished us with so much information from of the monastic life," he records the origination
" the holy synod assembled at Alexandria out of a vast European movement, and represents
of Egypt, Thebais, Libya, and Pentapolis," the great Alexandrian exile as the spiritual
composed, says Athanasius, of nearly loo ancestor of Benedict, of Bernard, and of the
prelates. At Rome his envoys gave such countless founders and reformers of " re-
evidence respecting Pistus as to cause the ligious " comnmnitics in the West.
senior of the Eusebian envoys to decamp by Meantime Elpidius and Philoxenus had
night in spite of an indisposition. His com- discharged their errand. The Eusebians at
panions asked Julius to convoke a council, Antioch, finding that Athanasius was at Rome,
and to act, if he pleased, as judge. He and that the council to which they were
accordingly invited both parties to a council, invited would be a free ecclesiastical assembly,
to be held where Athanasius should choose. detained the Roman legates beyond the time
Thus matters stood about the end of 339. specified, and then dismissed them with the
Early in 340 a new announcement disquieted excuse that Constantius was occupied with
the Alexandrian church. It was notified in a his Persian war. At the same time they
formal edict of the prefect that not Pistus, stimulated Philagrius and Gregory to new
but a Cappadocian named Gregory, was com- severities. Orthodox bishops were scourged
ing from the court to be installed as bishop and imprisoned Potammon never recovered
;

(Encycl. 2). This, says Athanasius, was con- from his stripes Sarapammon, another
;

sidered an unheard-of wrong. The churches confessor-bishop, was exiled (Hist. Ar. 12).
were more thronged than ever ; the people, The letters of Alexandrians to Athanasius,
in great excitement, and with passionate out- consolatory as proofs of their affection, gave
cries, called the magistrates and the whole city mournful accounts of torture and robbery, of
to witness that this attack on their legitimate hatred towards himself shewn in persecution
bishop proceeded from the mere wantonness of of his aunt, of countenance shewn to Gregory
Arian hatred. Gregory, they knew, was an by the " duke " Balacius ; and some of these
Arian, and therefore acceptable to the Euse- troubles were in his mind when, early in 341,
bian party : he was a fellow-countryman of he wrote " from Rome " his Festal Letter for
Philagrius. Philagrius attacked the church the year. That year had begun without any
of St. Quirinus, and encouraged a mob of the such settlement of his case as had been hoped
lowest townspeople and of savage peasants to for at Rome. December had passed, and
perpetrate atrocious cruelties and profana- no council could be held, for the Eusebians
tions. Athanasius was residing in the pre- had not arrived. January came, and at last
cincts of the church of St. Theonas :he knew the legates returned, the unwilling bearers of
that he was specially aimed at, and, in hope of a letter so offensive that Julius " resolved
preventing further outrage, he withdrew from to keep it to himself, in the hope that some
the city to a place of concealment in the Eusebians " would even yet arrive (Apol. 24)
neighbourhood, where he busied himself in and render the public reading of it unneces-
preparing an encyclic to give an account of sary. No one came. On the contrary, the
these horrors. This was on March 19. Four Eusebians resolved to take advantage of the
days later Gregory is said to have " entered approaching dedication of a new cathedral at
the city as bishop." Athanasius, after hastily Antioch, " the Golden Church," in order to
completing and dispatching his encyclic, hold a council there. Accordingly, ninety-
sailed for Rome in the Easter season of 340, seven bishops, many of whom were rather
some weeks after Constantine II. had been negatively than positively heterodox, as-
slain during his invasion of Italy. sembled on this occasion, apparently in Aug.
(4) From his Second Exile {^40) to his Second 341. Constantius was present. The sentence

Return (346). After Julius had welcomed passed against Athanasius at Tyre was af-
Athanasius, he sent two presbyters, Elpidius firmed ; several canons were passed ; and
and Philoxenus, in the early summer of 340, to three creeds were framed, in language partly
repeat his invitation to the Eusebian prelates, vague and general, partly all but reaching the
to fix definitely the next December as the time Nicene standard (cf. Newman, Arians, c. 4,
of the proposed council, and Rome as the s. I ; cf. Athan. Treatises, i. 105 seq.). This
place. Athanasius received much kindness business necessarily lasted some time and
;

from the emperor's aunt, Eutropion, and from no information as to this council had reached
many others {Ap. ad Const. 417 cf. Fest.
;
Rome when, in Nov. 341, Athanasius having
Ep. 13). He had with him two Egyptian now been waiting at Rome for eighteen
monks. Their presence in the city, and months {Apol. 29), Julius assembled the long-
Athanasius's enthusiasm for Anthony and delayed council, consisting of more than fifty
other types of monastic saintliness, made a bishops, in the church of the presbyter Vito.
strong impression on the Roman church Athanasius's case was fully examined ; Ath-
society, and abated the prejudices there exist- anasius was formally pronounced innocent ;

ing against the very name of monk, and the his right to brotherly treatment and church
disgust at a rude and strange exterior. In —
communion admitted from the first by the
fact, Athanasius's three years (340-343) at —
Roman bishop was solemnly recognized by
Rome had two great historic results, (a) The the Itahan council. The year 342 is not
Latin church, which became his " scholar " eventful in his history. Constans had shewn
as well as his " loyal partisan," was confirmed himself friendly to Athanasius, who at his
by the spell of his master-mind " in its request had sent him from Alexandria some
adhesion to orthodoxy, although it did not bound copies of the Scriptures (/I ^.arf Const. 4).
.

58 ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS
Narcissus, Maris, and two other prelates ap- for the rehearing of a prelate's cause. It need
peared before Constans at Treves, spoke in hardly be added that they would have no
support of the decisions against Athanasius, creed but the Nicene. They wrote letters of
and presented a creed which might, at first sympathy to the suffragans of Athanasius and
sight, appear all but to confess the " Homo- the churchmen of Alexandria, urging the
ousion." But Constans, doubtless swayed by faithful " to contend earnestly for the sound
bp. Maximin, who would not admit the faith and the innocence of Athanasius."
Eastern envoys to communion, dismissed them The bold line taken at Sardica provoked
from his presence (Athan. de Syn. 25 Soz. iii.
;
the advisers of Constantius to fresh severities ;

10 ;Hil. Fragm. iii. 27). and the Alexandrian magistrates received


Athanasius remained at Rome until the orders to behead Athanasius, or certain of his
summer of 343, when, " in the fourth year " clergy expressly named, if they should come
from his arrival, he received a letter from near the city. Athanasius, still kept under
Constans, by which he was ordered to meet the emperor's ban, had gone from Sardica
him at Milan {Ap. ad Const. 3, 4). Surprised to Naissus, and thence, at the invitation of
at the summons, he inquired as to its probable Constans, to Aquileia. There, in company
cause, and learned that some bishops had with the bp. Fortunatian, he was admitted
been urging Constans to propose to Constan- to more than one audience and whenever
;

tius the assembling of a new council, at which Constans mentioned Constantius, he replied
East and West might be represented. On in terms respectful towards the latter. Con-
arriving at the great capital of Northern Italy, stans peremptorily, and even with a threat
which was to be so memorably associated with of civil war, urged his brother to reinstate
the struggle between the church and Arianism, Athanasius (Socr. ii. 22). The death of Gre-
he was admitted, with Protasius, bp. of Milan, gory, about Feb. 345 {Hist. Ar. 21), gave
behind the veil of the audience-chamber, and Constantius an occasion for yielding the point.
received with " much kindness " by Constans, He therefore wrote to Athanasius, affecting to
who told him that he had already written to be solicitous of the Western emperor's assent
his brother, " requesting that a council might to an act of his own free clemency. He wrote
be held." Athanasius left Milan immediately two other letters {Apol. 51 Hist. Ar. 22),
;

afterwards, being desired by Constans to come and employed six " counts " to write encour-
into Gaul, in order to meet Hosius, the ven- agingly to the exile and Athanasius, after
;

erated bp. of Cordova, and accompany him to receiving these letters at Aquileia, made up
the council, which both sovereigns had now his mind, at last, to act on those assurances ;

agreed to assemble on the frontier line of their but not until Constantius could tell Constans
empires, at the Moesian city of Sardica. And that he had been " expecting Athanasius for
there, about the end of 343, some 170 prelates a year." Invited by Constans to Treves,
met, a small majority being Westerns. Athanasius made a diversion on his journey
It soon appeared that united action was in order to see Rome again it was some six
;

impossible. The majority, ignoring the years since he had been cordially welcomed
councils of Tyre and Antioch, and treating by Julius, who now poured forth his generous
the whole case as open, could not but regard heart in a letter of congratulation for the
Athanasius as innocent, or, at least, as not Alexandrian church, one of the most beautiful
yet proved guilty ; and he " joined them in documents in the whole Athanasian series.
celebrating the Divine mysteries " (Hil. Julius dwelt on the well-tried worth of Athan-
Fragm. iii. 14). The Eusebian minority, on asius, on his own happiness in gaining such a
reaching Sardica, had simply announced their friend, on the steady faith which the Alex-
arrival, and then shut themselves up in the andrians had exhibited, on the rapture with
lodgings provided for them at the palace, and which they would celebrate his return and
;

refused to join their brethren until the persons concluded by invoking for his " beloved
whom they denounced as convicted men brethren" the blessings "which eye had not
should be deprived of seats in the council. seen, nor ear heard." * Athanasius travelled
The answer was, that the council was pre- northward about midsummer visited Con-
;

pared to go into all the cases which could be stans, passed through Hadrianople {Hist. Ar.
submitted to it : each party would be free to 18), proceeded to Antioch, and saw Constan-
implead the other. The Eusebian bishops, tius for the third time {Ap. ad Const. 5). The
although urged to confront their adversaries, reception was gracious the emperor valued
:

withdrew from Sardica and established them- himself on his impassive demeanour (Ammian.
selves as a council at Philippopolis within the xvi. 10). Athanasius, without vilifying his
Eastern empire, renewed the sentences against enemies, firmly desired leave to confront them
Athanasius, put forth new ones against Julius, {Ap. ad Const. I.e. Hist. Ar. 22, 44).
;
" No,"
Hosius, and others, drew up an encyclic, and said Constantius, " God knows, I will never
adopted a creed (Apol. 36, 45, 48 Hist. Ar. 15, again credit such accusations and all records
; ;

i6, 44 Hil. de Syn. 34


; ;Fragm. 3). The pre- of past charges shall be erased." This latter
lates at Sardica proceeded with their inquiry, promise he at once fulfilled, by orders sent
recognized the innocence of Athanasius, and to the authorities in Egypt and he wrote
;

excommunicated eleven Eusebian bishops, as letters in favour of the archbishop to the


men who " separated the Son from the Father, clergy of Egypt and the laity of Alexandria.
and so merited separation from the Catholic One thing he asked, that Athanasius would
church." They enacted several canons, in- allow the Alexandrian Arians a single church.
cluding the famous one providing for a Athanasius promptly replied that he would do
reference, in certain circumstances, to " Julius, so, if a church might be granted at Antioch to
bp. of Rome," in " honour of Peter's mem- * .4pol. 55. Socrates (ii. 23) inserts eulogistic
ory," so that he might make arrangements phrases which Athanasius's text does not give.
ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS 59

the " Eustathian " body, which held aloof bearers of these letters, Athanasius desired
from the crypto- Arian bp. Leontius, and whose his people, assembled in church, " to pray for
services, held in a house, he had been attend- the safety of the most religious Constantius
ing. The emperor would have agreed to this, Augustus." The response was at once made,
but his advisers stood in the way.* " O Christ, help Constantius " !{Ap. ad
From Antioch Athanasius proceeded to Const. 9, 10, 23 ; Hist. Ar. 24, 51). He
Jerusalem, where an orthodox council met to had leisure for writing On the Nicene Definition
do him honour, and to congratulate his of Faith * and On the Opinions of Dionysius,
church. And now he had but to return home his great predecessor in the 3rd cent., whose
and enjoy the welcome which that church was language, employed in controversy with
eager to give. This he did, according to the SabelUanism, had been unfairly quoted in
Festal Index, on Oct. 21 (Paophi 24), 34G. support of Arianism. t [Dionysius.] He
We see in Gregory Nazianzen's panegyric a also brought out, at this time, what is called
picture of the vast mass of population, dis- his Apology against the Arians, although he
tributed into its several classes, and streaming afterwards made additions to it. J It may
forth, " like another Nile," to meet him at have been about this time that he chose the
some distance from Alexandria ; the faces blind scholar Didymus, already renowned for
gazing from every eminence at the well-known vast and varied learning, to preside over the
form, the ears strained to catch his accents, " Catechetical School." [Didymus.] When
the voices rising in emulous plaudits, the Magnentius sent envoys to Constantius, one
hands clapping, the air fragrant with incense, of them visited Alexandria and Athanasius, ;

the city festal with banquets and blazing with in speaking to him of Constans, burst into
illuminations— all that made this return of tears. He at first had some apprehension of
Athanasius in after-times the standard for any danger from Magnentius ; but it was soon
splendid popular display. evident that his real danger was from the
(3) From his Second Return (346) to his Third Arianizing advisers of Constantius. Valens
Exile (356). —His 19th Festal Letter, for 347, and Ursacius, having now recanted their re-
begins with a thanksgiving for having been cantation, were ready to weave new plots ;

" brought from distant lanas." The Egyptian and Liberius, the new bp. of Rome, was plied
prelates, in council, received the decrees of with letters against him, which were out-
Sardica. More than 400 bishops of different weighed, in the judgment of a Roman synod,
countries, including Britain, were now in by an encyclic of eighty Egyptian prelates ;

communion with Athanasius he had a mul- and Rome remained faithful to his cause.
;

titude of their " letters of peace " to answer. (See Liberius's letter to Constantius, Hil.
Many persons in Egypt who had sided with Fragm. 5. Another letter, in which Liberius
the Arians came by night to him with their is made to say that he had put Athanasius out
excuses it was a time " of deep and wondrous of his communion for refusing to come to
:

peace " {Hist. Ar. 25), which lasted for a few Rome when summoned, is justly regarded as
years. Valens and Ursacius had already, it a forgery.) This was in 352 and Athanasius,
;

seems, anathematized Arianism before a in May 353, thought it well to send 5 bishops
council at Milan ; but they deemed it ex- (Soz. iv. 9, and Fragm. Maff.), one being his
pedient to do more. In 347 they appeared at friend Serapion of Thmuis, and 3 presbyters,
Rome, and presented to Julius a humble to disabuse Constantius of bad impressions as
apologetic letter, having already written in a to his conduct. Five days later, May 23,
different strain to Athanasius, announcing Montanus, a " silentiary " or palace chamber-
that they were " at peace with him." f He lain, arrived with an imperial letter for-
believed at the time that they were sincere ; bidding him to send envoys, but granting
they afterwards ascribed their act to fear of a request for himself to go to Milan.
Constans {Hist. Ar. 29). This motive, if it Athanasius, detecting an attempt to decoy
existed, was ere long removed ; the revolt of him, replied that as he had never made such
Magnentius brought Constans to an ignomini- a request, he could not think it right to use a
ous death at the foot of the Pyrenees, in permission granted under a misconception ;

Feb. 350. This tragedy was a severe shock but that if the emperor sent him a definite
to Athanasius. He received, indeed, letters order, he would set forth at once {Ap. ad
from Constantius, assuring him of continued Const. 19-21). Montanus departed; and the
favour, and encouraging him to pursue his next news that Athanasius received from
episcopal work. The Alexandrian authorities Europe was such as to make him forget all
were also commanded to suppress any " plot- personal danger. The Western usurper had
ting against Athanasius." Thereupon in pre- been finally overthrown in August ; and
sence of high state officers, including the Constantius, having gone to Aries for the
* See Socr. ii. 23, Soz. iii. 20. They were called
after bp. Eustathius {Hist. Ar. 4), deposed by Arians * In this treatise he guards the Catholic sense of
in 330. For Leontius, see de Fuga, 26 ; Theod. the title " Son," gives some account of the council's
ii. 24 ;Hooker, v. 42, 9. Many of the orthodox proceedings, and defends the language adopted by
continued to worship in his churches (e.g. Flavian it, adducing ante-Xicene authorities. (He upholds
and Diodore). Constantius's absolute dependence Origen's orthodoxy.)
on his advisers is scornfully noted in Hist. Ar. 69, 70. t He urged that Dionysius had been speaking
t See Newman's note. Hist. Tracts, p. 86 (Apol. simply of Christ's Manhood (see Liddon's Bamp.
19) :cf. Apol. 2 Hist. Ar. 26, 44.
; As Westerns,Led. p. 425).
they naturally treated the bp. of Rome with much X In the Bollandist Life {Act. SS., May 2), the
greater deference than the bp. of Alexandria; and Apology against Arians is called the Syllogus, or
collection of documents, etc., framed about 342, and
even in their statement to Julius they betray their
distrust of Athanasius. That they should retract, afterwards appended to the Ariati History "ad
from motives of policy, was for them no unnatural Monachos." The old name of Second Apology is, at
course: cf. Hil. Fragm. i. 20. all events, clearly misapplied.
60 ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS
winter, was induced by the Arians to hold from the emperor's passionate eagerness to
there, instead of at Aquileia, the council which have him condemned, and from the really
Liberius and many Italian bishops had re- brutal persecution which began to rage
quested him to assemble.* The event was throughout the empire against those who
disastrous Vincent, the Roman legate, was
: adhered to his communion (Hist. Ar. 31), but
induced to join with other prelates in con- from the appearance at Alexandria, in July
demning Athanasius but Paulinus of Treves
; or Aug. 355, of an imperial notary, named
had inherited Maximin's steadfastness, and Diogenes, who, though he brought no express
preferred exile to the betrayal of a just cause. orders, and had no interview with Athanasius,
In the Lent of 354 the Alexandrian churches used every effort to get him out of the city.
were so crowded that some persons suffered Failing in this, he departed in Dec. and on
;

severely, and the people urged Athanasius to Jan. 5, 355, Syrianus, a general, with another
allow the Easter services to be held in a large notary named Hilarius, entered Alexandria.
church which was still unfinished, called the The Arian party exulted in their approaching
Caesarean. The case was peculiar {A p. ad triumph Athanasius asked Syrianus if he
;

Const. 15 Epiph. Haey. 69, 2)


; the church : had brought any letter from the Emperor. He
was being built on ground belonging to the said he had not. The archbishop referred him
emperor to use it prematurely, without his
; to the guarantee of security which he had
leave, might be deemed a civil offence to ; himself received ;and the presbyters, the
use it before dedication, an ecclesiastical im- laity, and the majority of all the inhabitants
propriety. Athanasius tried to persuade the supported him in demanding that no change
people to put up with the existing inconveni- should be made without a new imperial letter
ence :they answered, they would rather keep — the rather that they themselves were pre-
Easter in the open country. Under these paring to send a deputation to Constantius.
circumstances he gave way. The Arianizers The prefect of Egypt and the provost "ot
were habitually courtiers, and ready, on Alexandria were present at this interview ;
occasion, to be formalists likewise and this ; and Syrianus, at last, promised " by the life
using of the undedicated imperial church was of the emperor" that he would comply with
one of several charges now urged at court the demand. This was on Jan. 18 and for
;

against their adversary, and dealt with in his more than three weeks all was quiet. But
Apology to Constantius the others being that
; about midnight on Thursday, Feb. 8, when
he had stimulated Constans to quarrel with Athanasius was at a night-long vigil service
his brother, had corresponded with Magnen- in St. Theonas's church, preparatory to the
tius, and that he had not come to Italy on Friday service, Syrianus, with Hilarius, and
receiving the letter brought by Montanus. A Gorgonius, the head of the police force, beset
letter which Athanasius wrote before the the church with a large body of soldiers. " I
"
Easter of this year, or perhaps of 355, is par- sat down," says Athanasius, " on my throne
ticularly interesting he seeks to recall
; (which would be at the extreme end of the
Dracontius, a monk who had been elected to church), " and desired the deacon to read the
a bishopric, and had weakly fled from his Psalm" (our 136th), "and the people to
new duties. The earnestness, good sense, and respond, For His mercy endureth for ever, and
aftectJonateness of this letter are very charac- then all to depart home." This majestic
teristic of Athanasius. He dwells repeatedly " act of faith " was hardly finished, when the
on the parable of the Talents, reminds Dra- doors were forced, and the soldiers rushed in
contius of solemn obhgations, and warns him with a fierce shout, clashing their arms,
against imagining the monastic life to be discharging their arrows, and brandishing
the one sphere of Christian self-denial. f The their swords in the light of the church lamps.
calm contemplation of fast-approaching trials, Some of the people in the nave had already
which would make a severe demand on departed, others were trampled down or
Christian men's endurance, shews a "discern- mortally injured others cried to the arch-
;

ment " of the " signs " of 354-5 in Athanasius. bishop to escape. " I said I would not do so
For, in the spring of 355, he would hear of until they had all got away safe. So I stood
the success of Constantius in terrorizing the up, and called for prayer, and desired all to
great majority of a large council at Milan, go out before me and when the greater
. . .

which had been summoned at the urgent desire part had gone, the monks who were there,
of Liberius. A
few faithful men, such as and certain of the clergy, came up to me and
Eusebius of Vercelli, Lucifer of Caliaris, carried me away." And then, he adds, he
Dionysius of Milan, after a momentary weak- passed through the mass of his enemies un-
ness, and Maximus of Naples, who was suffer- observed, thanking God that he had been able
ing at the time from illness, alone refused to to secure in the first instance his people's
condemn Athanasius (Hist. Ar. 32-34^ and ; safety, and afterwards his own. As on a
in standing out against the incurable tyran- former occasion, he deemed it his duty to
nousness of Caesarism, as thus exhibited, must accept an opportunity of escape, especially
have felt themselves to be contending both for when the sacrifice of his life would have been
civil justice and for Nicene orthodoxy. ruinous to the cause of the church in Egypt
That some coup d'etat was meditated against (see Augustine, Ep. 228, 10) and he there-
;

Athanasius must have been evident, not only fore concealed himself in the country, " hiding
himself," as the Arian History, c. 48, employs
the prophet's words, " for a httle moment,
* See I,iberius's letter to Hosius in Ilil. Fra^m. 6.
The spurious letter referred to above (as to which see until the indignation should be overpast."
de Broglie, L'Egl.el VEinp. 2me part. i. 233) begins
" Studens pad," and forms Fr. 4. (6) From his Third to his Fourth Exile (356-
t
" I know of bishops who do, and of monks who 362). — On leaving Alexandria, Athanasius at
do not, fast." first thought of appeaUng in person to Con-
ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS 61

stantius, who could not, he tried to hope, have Egypt, and the monasteries and hermitages of
sanctioned the late outrage. But he was de- the Thebaid." A veil of mystery was thus
terred by the news of one woe following upon drawn over his life and the interest was
;

another {Ap. ad Const. 27, iq). Bishops of heightened by the romantic incidents naturally
the West who had refused to disown him were following from the Government's attempts to
suffering under tyranny, or had been hurried track and seize him. When comparatively
into exile. Among the latter class was the undisturbed, he would still be full of activities,
Roman bishop himself, who had manfully ecclesiastical and theological. Athanasius made
spurned both gifts and menaces (Theod. ii. 16); those six years of seclusion available for
and Hosius, on addressing to Constantius a literary work of the most substantial kind,
remonstrance full of pathetic dignity, had been both controversial and historical. The books
sent for to be detained at Sirmium. Then which he now began to pour forth were appar-
came news which touched Athanasius more ently written in cottages or caves, where he
closely. It was given out that one George, sat, like any monk, on a mat of palm-leaves,
a Cappadocian of evil reputation and ruthless with a bundle of papyrus beside him, amid the
temper, was coming to supersede him ;and intense hght and stillness of the desert (Kings-
that a vague creed, purporting to be simply ley's Hermits, p. 130, 19). He finished his
Scriptural, but in fact ignoring the Nicene Apology to Constantius, a work which he had
doctrine, was to be proposed for his suffragans' for some time in hand, and which he still
acceptance. This last report set him at once hoped to be able, in better days, to deliver in
to work on a Letter to the Egyptian and Libyan the emperor's presence. He met the taunts
Bishops. But he had soon to hear of a of " cowardice " directed against him by the
repetition of the sacrileges and brutalities of Arians with an Apology for his Flight. To
the days of Gregory. As before, Lent was the same period belong the Letter to the
the time chosen for the arrival of the usurper. Monks, with the Arian History (not now
Easter brought an increase of trouble in the extant as a whole), which it introduces (and
persecution of prelates, clergy, virgins, widows, as to which it is difficult to resist the impres-
the poor, and even ordinary Catholic house- sion that part of it, at least, was written under
holders. On the evening of the Sunday after Athanasius's supervision, by some friend or
Pentecost, when " the brethren " had met for secretary) a Letter to Serapion, bp. of Thmuis,
;

worship, apart from the Arians, in the pre- giving an account of the death of Arius, the
cincts of a cemetery, a military commander, details of which he had learned from his
named Sebastian, a fierce-tempered Mani- presbyter Macarius, while he himself was re-
chean, whose sympathies went with George, sident at Treves ; and, above all, the great
came to the spot with more than 3000 soldiers, Orations or Discourses against the Arians.
and found some virgins and others still in These last have been described by Montfaucon
prayer after the general congregation had as " the sources whence arguments have been
broken up. On their refusal to embrace borrowed by all who have since written in
Arianism, he caused them to be stripped, and behalf of the Divinity of the Word." The
beaten or wounded with such severity that first discourse is occupied with an exposition
some died from the effects, and their corpses of the greatness of the question at issue with ;

were kept without burial. This was followed proofs of the Son's eternity and uncreatedness,
by the banishment of sixteen bishops, doubt- with discussion of objections, and with com-
less for rejecting the new-made creed ; more ments on texts alleged in support of Arianism
than thirty fled, others were scared into {i.e. Phil. ii. 9, 10 Ps. xlv. 7, 8
; ;
Heb i. 4).
an apparent conformity, and the vacated The second, written after some interval, pur-
churches were given over to men whose moral sues this line of comment, especially on a text
disqualifications for any religious office were much urged by Arians in the LXX version
compensated by their profession of Arianism. (Prov. viii. 22). The third explains texts in
Tragical as were these tidings, Athanasius still the Gospels, and in so doing sets forth the
clung to his purpose of presenting himself Christ of the church, as uniting in Himself
before Constantius, until he learned that one true Godhead and true Manhood; and it then
imperial letter had denounced him as a fugitive passes to the consideration of another Arian
criminal who richly merited death, and an- statement, that the Sonship was a result of
other had exhorted the two Ethiopian sove- God's mere will. Differing from other writers.
reigns to send Frumentius to Alexandria, that Dr. Newman considers the fourth Discourse to
George might instruct him in the knowledge be an undigested collection of notes or memo-
of " the supreme God." randa on several heresies, principally that
Then it was that Athanasius, accepting the which was imputed to his friend Marcellus,
position of a proscribed man who must needs and to persons connected with him an —
live as a fugitive, " turned back again," as he imputation which Athanasius, about 360,
says, " towards the desert," and sought for began to think not undeserved. It may be
welcome and shelter amid the innumerable thought by some who have no bias against
rnonastic cells. Anthony had died at the be- the theology of the Discourses that his tender-
ginning of the year, desiring that a worn-out ness towards an old associate is in striking
sheepskin cloak (the monk's usual upper dress), contrast with the exuberance of objurgation
which when new had been the gift of Athan- bestowed on the Arian " madmen " and " foes
asius, might be returned to him. (V it. Ant. 91). of Christ." But not to urge that the 4th
As Athanasius appears to have made secret cent, had no estabhshed rules of controversial
visits to Alexandria, he probably spent some politeness, and that the acerbity of Greek
time among the recluses of Lower Egypt, but disputation and the personaUties of Roman
he also doubtless visited what Villemain calls society had often too much influence on the
*'
the pathless solitudes which surround Upper tone of Christian argument, one must remem-
:

62 ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS
ber that Athanasius is not attacking all 24 barbarously murdered him. The Arians
members of the Avian communion, but repre- set up one Lucius in his place but Julian, as
;

sentatives of it who had been conspicuous, if to shew his supercilious contempt for the
not for heterodoxy alone, but for secularity in disputes of " Galileans," or his detestation
its worst form, for unscrupulousness, and for of the memory of Constantius, permitted all
violence. He followed up his Discourses by the bishops whom his predecessor had exiled
four Letters to Serapion of Thmuis, of which to return and Athanasius, taking advantage
;

the second briefly repeated the teaching of the of this edict, reappeared in Alexandria, to the
Discourses, while the others were directed joy of his people, Feb. 22, 362.
against a theory then reported to him by One of his first acts was to hold a council
Serapion as springing up, and afterwards at Alexandria for the settlement of several
known as Macedonianism which, abandon-
;
pressing questions, [a) Many bishops deeply
ing the Arian position in regard to the Son, regretted their concessions at Ariminum in
strove with singular inconsistency to retain it 359 how
: were they to be treated ? [b) It
in regard to the Spirit. Athanasius met this had become urgently necessary to give some
error by contending for " a Trinity real and advice to Paulinus and his flock at Antioch,
undivided," in which the Spirit was included with a view to healing the existing schism
with the Father and the Son. there, (c) A dispute which had arisen as to
The general aspect of church affairs was the word " hypostasis " had to be settled. (4)
very unhopeful. At Constantinople an Arian A correct view as to the Incarnation and the
persecution had again set in. But the defec- Person of Christ had to be established. The
tion of Hosius in 357, and I.iberius in 358, work before the council was that of harmoniz-
after hard pressure and cruel usage, from the ing and reconciling. A synodal letter, or
steadfastness which Athanasius had so much " Tome," addressed " to the Antiochenes "
admired, must have wounded him to the (i.e. to Paulinus and his flock), and composed
heart. Yet he speaks of them with character- by Athanasius, is one of the noblest document*
istic and most generous tenderness, and with that ever emanated from a council. But it
full recognition of the trials under which they came too late to establish peace at Antioch.
had given way {Hist. Ar. 45, 41 ; Apol. 89 ;
Lucifer of Caliaris had taken upon him to
de Fugd, 5). In 359 the general body of consecrate Paulinus as the legitimate bp. of
Western bishops, at the council of Ariminum, Antioch, and so perpetuated the division
were partly harassed and partly cheated into which his wiser brethren had hoped to heal.
adopting an equivocal but really Arian con- The pagans of Alexandria had been rebuked
fession, which was also adopted at the begin- by Julian for the murder of George, but he
ning of 360 by the legates of the Eastern lent a ready ear to their denunciations of
council of Seleucia. An account of the earlier Athanasius as a man whose influence would
proceedings of these two councils was drawn destroy their religion. Julian assured them
up, in the form of a letter, by Athanasius, that he had never intended Athanasius to
who, on the ground of a few words in the resume " what is called the episcopal throne " ;

opening of this Letter on the Councils of Ari- and peremptorily commanded him to leave
minum and Seleucia, has been thought by Alexandria the imperial edict was communi-
;

Tillemont and Gibbon to have been present cated to Athanasius on Oct. 23 = Paophi 27, (

at any rate at the latter place. The treatise Fest. Ind., Fragm. Maff.). The faithful
is remarkable for his considerateness towards gathered around him weeping. " Be of good
those of the semi-Arians whose objections to heart," he said " it is but a cloud
; it will ;

the Nicene Creed were rather verbal than soon pass." He instantly embarked to go up
real, while the second creed of Sirmium had the Nile. But JuUan's implied orders were
driven them into open hostility to the Arians not forgotten some Government agents
;

properly so-called, which they had expressed pursued his vessel. They met a boat coming
in their council of Ancyra in 358. Athanasius, down the river, and asked for news of Athan-
then expressly naming their leader, Basil of asius. " He is not far off," was the reply.
Ancyra, welcomes them as brothers who mean —
The boat was his own he himself, perhaps,
essentially what churchmen mean. He will the speaker (Theod. iii. 9). His facilities of
not for the present urge the Homoousion upon information had given him warning of the
them. He is sure that in time they will peril, and his presence of mind had baffled it.
accept it, as securing that doctrine of Christ's He sailed on towards Alexandria, but con-
essential Sonship which their own symbol cealed himself at Chaereu, the first station
" Homoiousion " could not adequately guard from the capital, then proceeded to Memphis,
(de Syn. 41). But while exhibiting this large- where he wrote his Festal Letter for 363, and
minded patience and forbearance he is careful then made his way to the Thebaid.
to contrast the long series of Arian creeds with (7) From his Fourth Exile to his Death
the one invariable standard of the orthodox (362-373). It was probably about this time,
the only refuge from restless variations will shortly before Easter, 363, that Athanasius
be found in a frank adoption of the creed of was met, while approaching Hermopolis, by
Nicaea (ib. 32 ;cf. ad Afros, 9). of Tabenne, the banks of the Nile
Theodore
On Nov. 30 the accession of Julian was being thronged by bishops, clergy, and monks.
formally proclaimed at Alexandria. The Night apparently favoured this demonstra-
Pagans, in high exultation, thought that their
tion Athanasius,
; having disembarked,
time was come for taking vengeance on the mounted an ass which Theodore led, and pur-
Arian bishop, whom they had once before sued his way amid a vast body of monks
tumultuously expelled for oppressive and bearing lanterns and torches, and chanting
violent conduct. They rose in irresistible psalms. He stayed some time at Hermopolis
force, threw George into prison, and on Dec. and Antinoe, for the purpose of preaching ;
ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS 63

then proceeded southwards to Tabenne. At mise to refer the case of Athanasius to the
midsummer, according to another narrative, emperor. H we may combine his statement
he was at Antinoe, apprehensive of being with Sozomen's (who, however, places these
arrested and put to death, when Theodore events in a subsequent year), we should sup-
and another abbot named Pammon came to pose that the prefect was but biding his time ;

see him, and persuaded him to embark with and on the night of Oct. 5, Athanasius, having
them in Theodore's closely covered boat, in doubtless been forewarned, left his abode in
order to conceal himself in Tabenne. Athan- the precinct of St. Dionysius's church, and
asius was in prayer, agitated by the prospect took refuge in a country house near the New
of martyrdom, when Theodore, according to River. For four months the archbishop's
the story, assured him that Julian had at that concealment lasted, until an imperial notary
very hour been slain in his Persian war. The came to the country house with a great multi-
day of Julian's death was June 26, 363. tude, and led Athanasius back into his church,
" The cloud had passed," and Athanasius Feb. I (Mechir 7), 366. His quiet was not
returned by night to Alexandria. After his again seriously disturbed, and Athanasius was
arrival, which was kept secret, he received a free to devote himself to his proper work,
letter from the new emperor Jovian, desiring whether of writing or of administration. His
him to resume his functions, and to draw up Festal Letter for 367 contained a list of the
a statement of the Catholic faith. Athanasius books of Scripture which, so far as regards
at once assembled a council, and framed a the New Testament, agrees precisely with our
synodal letter, in which the Nicene Creed was own (see, too, de Deer. 18). The canonical
embodied, its Scripturalness asserted, and the books are described as " the fountains of
great majority of Churches (including the salvation, through which alone " (a mode of
British) referred to as professing it: Arianism speaking very usual with Athanasius) " is the
was condemned, semi-Arianism pronounced teaching of religion transmitted" a second
;

inadequate, the Homoousion explained as class of books is mentioned, as " read " in
expressive of Christ's real Sonship, the co- church for religious edification the name
;

equality of the Holy Spirit maintained in " apocryphal " is reserved for a third class to
terms which partly anticipate the language which heretics have assigned a fictitious dig-
of the Creed of Constantinople. On Sept. 5 nity (Westcott, On the Canon, pp. 487, 520).
Athanasius sailed to Antioch, bearing this To this period has been assigned the comment
letter. He was most graciously received, on doctrinal texts which is called a treatise
while the rival bp. Lucius and his companions On the Incarnation and against the Arians ;

were rebuffed with some humour and some but its entire genuineness may be reasonably
impatience by the blunt soldier-prince, who, doubted. In or about 369 he held a council
however, during his brief reign, shewed him- at Alexandria, in order to receive letters from
self as tolerant as he was orthodox. The a Roman council held under Damasus, the
general prospects of the church must now successor of Liberius, and also from other
have seemed brighter than at any time since Western prelates, excommunicating Ursacius
330. Liberius was known to have made a and Valens, and enforcing the authority of the
full declaration of orthodoxy ; and many Nicene Creed. Hereupon Athanasius, in a
Western bishops, responding to the appeals of synodal letter addressed To the Africans, i.e.
Eusebius and Hilary of Poictiers, had eagerly to those of the Carthaginian territory, con-
renounced the Ariminian Creed and professed trasts the "ten or more " synodical formulas
the Nicene. But the local troubles of Antioch of Arianism with the Nicene Creed, gives some
were distressing and Athanasius, seeing no
; account of its formation, and exposes the
other solution, recognized their bishop Paulinus futile attempt of its present adversaries to
as the true head of the Antiochene church, on claim authority for the later, as distinct from
his appending to his signature of the Tome a the earlier, proceedings of the Ariminian
full and orthodox declaration, which, accord- council. It appears that on Sept. 22, 369,
ing to Epiphanius {Haer. yy, 20), Athanasius Athanasius, who had in May 368 begun to
himself had framed. rebuild the Caesarean church, laid the
Having written his Festal Letter for 364 foundations of another church, afterwards
at Antioch, Athanasius reached home, appar- called by his own name {Fest. Ind.). We
ently, on Feb. 13, a few days before Jov'ian's find him excommunicating a cruel and licen-
death. Valentinian L succeeded, and soon tious governor in Libya, and signifying the
afterwards assigned the East to his brother act by circular letters. One of these was
Valens. The Alexandrian church was not at sent to Basil, who had just become exarch, or
first a sufferer by this change of monarchs ;
archbp., of Caesarea in Cappadocia, and had
and 364-365 may be the probable date for the received, perhaps at that time, from Athan-
publication of the Life of Anthony, which asius, a formal notification of the proceedings
Athanasius addressed " to the monks abroad," of the council of 362 (Ep. 204). Basil immedi-
i.e. those in Italy and Gaul. But, ere long, ately announced to his own people the sentence
his troubles to some extent reappeared. Ac- pronounced in Egypt ; the strong sense of
cording to the Egyptian documents, it was church unity made such a step both regular
the spring of 365 when Valens issued an order and natural, and he wrote to assure Athan-
for the expulsion of all bishops who, having asius that the offender would be regarded by
been expelled under Constantius, had been the faithful at Caesarea as utterly aUen from
recalled under Julian, and thereby announced Christian fellowship (Ep. 60). This led to a
that he meant to follow the Arian policy of correspondence, carried on actively in 371.
Constantius. On May 5 this order reached Basil, who had troubles of all kinds weighing
Alexandria, and caused a popular ferment, upon his spirit, sought aid in regard to one of
only quieted on June 8 by the prefect's pro- —
them the unhappy schism of Antioch {Ep.
a

64 ATHANASIUS ATHANASIUS
66). He wanted Athanasius to promote the Orat. iii. 41, that Christ was " very God in

recognition by the Westerns of Meletius as the flesh, and very Flesh in the Word." In
rightful bp. of Antioch, and to induce Paulinus truth, these later treatises, like the great
to negotiate. In the autumn Basil wrote Discourses, exclude by anticipation both the
again [Ep. 6g), and the tone which he adopts forms of heresy, in reference to the Person and
towards Athanasius is very remarkable. He Natures of Christ, which troubled the church
calls him the foremost person (literally, the in the next three centuries (see especially i.
summit) of the whole church, the man of II, ii. 10). Athanasius, in the fruits of his
" truly grand and apostolic soul, who from work, was " in truth the Immortal" (Christ.
boyhood had been an athlete in the cause of Remembr. xxxvii. 206^ he was continually
religion" —"a spiritual father," whom he
:

" planting trees under which men of a later


longed earnestly to see, and whose conversa- age might sit." It might indeed be said that
tion would amply compensate for all the he " waxed old in his work " (Ecclus. xi. 20).
sufferings of a lifetime (Ep. 69, 80, 82). But But the time of work for him came to an
although Athanasius consented to act as a end in the spring of 373. The discussions
medium between Basil and the Westerns about the year of his death may be considered
(Ep. 90), he could not take any direct part in as practically closed ; the Festal Index,
favour of Meletius, whose rival's position he although its chronology is sometimes faulty,
had unequivocally recognized. Nothing came may be considered as confirming the date of
of the application. 373, given in the Maffeian Fragment, sup-
Athanasius was far from tolerating, in these ported by other ancient authorities, and
latter years of his life, any theories which accepted by various writers. The exact day,
seemed definitely heterodox respecting what we may believe, was Thursday, May 2, on
may be called the human side of the Incar- which day of the month Athanasius is vener-
nation. If, in his Letter to Adelphius, he ated in the Western church. He had sat oa
condemned a certain class of Arians, and the Alexandrian throne, as his great successor
vindicated against their cavils the adoration Cyril says in a letter to the monks of Egypt,
paid to Christ's Manhood, that is, to His one " forty-six complete years " had he lived a
;

Person Incarnate if, in his Letter to Maximus, few weeks longer, the years of his episcopate
;

he denounced those who spoke of the man would have been forty-seven. Having recom-
Christ as simply a saint with whom the mended Peter, one of his presbyters, for
Word had become associated he was also, election in his place, he died tranquilly in his
in his Letter to Epictetus, bp. of Corinth
;

— own house, " after many struggles," as Rufinus


tract called forth by a communication from says (ii. 3), " and after his endurance had won

Epictetus most earnest against some who, many a crown," amid troubles which Tille-
while " glorying in the Nicene confession, mont ventures to call a continual martyrdom.
represented Christ's body as not truly human, Such was the career of Athanasius the
but formed out of the essence of Godhead. Great, as he began to be called in the next
This was, in fact, the second proposition of the generation. Four points, perhaps, ought
heresy called Apollinarian the first being that especially to dwell in our remembrance
;
(a):

which had attracted the attention of the the deep religiousness which illuminated all
council of 362, and had been disclaimed by his studies and controversies by a sense of his

those whom the council could examine as relations as a Christian to his Redeemer (b)
;

to the non-existence, in Christ, of a rational the persistency, so remarkable in one whose


soul, the Word being supposed to supply its natural temperament was acutely sensitive ;

place. These views had grown out of an (c) the combination of gifts, " firmness with
unbalanced eagerness to exalt the Saviour's discretion and discrimination," as Newman
dignity : but the great upholders of Nicene expresses it, which enabled him, while never
faith saw that they were incompatible with turning aside from his great object, to be, as
His Manhood and His Headship, that they Gregory Nazianzen applies the apostolic
virtually brought back Docetism, and that one phrase, " all things to all men " and in
;

of them, at any rate, involved a debased con- close connexion with this, (d) the affectionate-
ception of Deity. In the next year, 372, he ness which made him so tender as a friend,
combated both these propositions with " the and so active as a peacemaker which won —
keenness and richness of thought which dis- for him such enthusiastic loyalty, and endowed
tinguish his writings generally " (see Newman, the great theologian and church ruler with the
Church of the Fathers, p. 162 Praef. ed. powers peculiar to a truly lovable man.
;
That
Benson, ii. 7) in two books entitled Against he was not flawless, that his words could be
Apollinaris. These books are remarkable for somewhat too sharp in controversy, or some-
the masterly distinctness with which the one what unreal in addressing a despot, that he
Christ is set forth as " perfect God and was not always charitable in his interpretation
perfect Man " li. 16) : if words occur in of his adversaries' conduct, or that his casu-
ii. 10 which seem at first sight to favour istry, on one occasion, seems to have lacked
Monothelitism, the context shews their mean- the healthy severity of St. Augustine's— this
ing to be that tlie Divine will in Christ was may be, and has been, admitted but it is
;

dominant over the human if in the next


; not extravagant to pronounce his name the
chajiter the phrase " God suffered through greatest in the church's post-apostolic history.
the flesh " is called unscriptural, the whole In 1698 appeared the great Benedictine
argument shews that he is contending against ed. of his works, enriched by the Life from the
the passibility of the Saviour's Godhead. pen of Montfaucon, who in 1707 published,
Inexact as might be some of his phrases, the in one of the volumes of his Nova Patrum et
general purport of his teaching on this great Scriptorum Graecorum Collectio, additional
subject is unmistakable ;it is, as he says in remains collected by his industry. The work
ATHANASIUS Athenagoras 65

on the " Titles of the Psalms " was edited by A.D. 451, where both he and his rival signed as
Nic. Antonelli at Rome, in 1746 and in 1777
; bp. of Perrha. His case was fully heard, and
appeared at Padua an ed. in 4 vols, fol., com- it was determined that the original charges
bining the labours of previous editors. against him should be investigated by Maximus
A few English translations of some of at Antioch. We
are in complete ignorance of
Athanasius's works had appeared before the the issue of this investigation. (Labbe, Cone,
publication of any part of the " Library of iv. 717-754 ; Liberatus Diac. in Breviario.
the Fathers." But the volume of Historical Labbe, v. 762 Cave, Hist. Lit. i. 479 Christ.
; ;

Tracts of Si. Athanasiiis, and the two volumes Lupus, ii.) [e.v.]
of Treatises in Controversy with the Arians, Athanasius (4), bp. of Ancyra in N. Galatia
published in that series at Oxford in 1843- (a.d. 360-369). His father, who bore the same
1844, under Dr. Newman's editorship, must name, was a man of high family and great
(whatever exceptions may be taken to a few and had held important offices in the
learning,
passages in the notes) be always ranked among State (idvQ)v Kal irbXi^jiv apxo-s difvdvvavTos) ;
the richest treasures of English Patristic but was reputed harsh and unfatherly to his
literature. These translations have been re- children. This rumour, reaching St. Basil's
printed and revised in what is now the best ears, led him to write a friendly remonstrance,
collection in English of Athanasius's chief and hence arose a correspondence of which
works, with a very valuable introduction, life, one letter is preserved {Ep. 24). The son
and illustrative notes by Dr. A. Robertson, Athanasius was raised to the see of Ancyra by
bp. of Exeter, in the Post-Nicene Fathers, ed. the Arian Acacius of Caesarea, through whose
by Dr. Schaff and Dr. Wace. The Orations influence his predecessor Basilius had been
against Arius, with an account of the life of deposed at a synod held at Constantinople
Athanasius by VV. Bright, are pub. by the A.D. 360 (Soz. iv. 25 Philost. v. i).
; But not-
Clarendon Press, as also his Historical Writings withstanding this inauspicious beginning, he
according to the Benedictine text, with intro. gave unquestionable proofs of his orthodoxy
bv VV. 13right. A cheap popular Life of by taking an active part in the Synod of
Athanasius by R. W. Bush is pub. by S.P.C.K. Tyana (a.d. 367), at which the Nicene symbol
in their Fathers for Eng. Readers and a cheap
; was accepted (Soz. vi. 12). By St. Basil he
trans, of the Orations in " A. and M. Theol. is commended as " a bulwark of orthodoxy
"
Lib." (Griffith). [w.b-I {Ep. 25), and Gregory Nyssen praises him as
Athanasius (1), bp. of Anagastus in Cilicia " valuing the truth above everything " [c.
Secunda and metropolitan, a disciple of St. Eunorn. i. ii. 292). Owing to some misunder-
Lucian of Antioch (Philost. H. E. iii. 15), standing, however, Athanasius had spoken in
reckoned by Arius, in his letter to Eusebius very severe terms of St. Basil, misled, as Basil
Nicom., among the bishops who coincided conjectures, by the fact that some heretical
with him in doctrine (Theod. H. E. i. 5). The writings had been fathered upon him and ;

great Athanasius {de Synod, p. 886) accuses the bp. of Caesarea sends an affectionate letter
him of having, previous to the council of of remonstrance {Ep. 25), in which he speaks
Nicaea, written blasphemies equal to those of of Athanasius in the highest terms. At his
Arius, of which he gives a specimen. He is death Basil writes a letter of condolence to the
said by Le Quien, on the authority of the Lib. church of Ancyra, on the loss of one who was
Synod. Grace, to have supported Arius at the truly " a pillar and foundation of the church "
council of Nicaea. Philostorgius {H. E. iii. {Ep. 29). This seems to have happened a.d.
15) tells us that when Aetius was expelled from 368 or 369 (see Garnier, Basil. Op. iii. p.
his master's house, after his unlucky victory Ixxvii. seq.). [l.]
in argument, Athanasius received him and —
Athenagoras. I. Life. There is scarcely —
read the Gospels with him. [e.v.] one catalogue of the ancient writers of the
Athanasius (2), an Arian bp. who succeeded church wherein we find mention of Athen-
Philip in the see of Scythopolis, c. 372. He is
agoras or his works. He is not noticed by
charged by Epiphanius with pushing his Arian Eusebius, Jerome, Photius, or Suidas. But
tenets to the most audacious impiety, asserting in a fragment of the book of Methodius, bp.
that the Son and Holy Spirit were creatures, and of Tyre (3rd cent.), de Resurrectione Anim-
had nothing in common with the Divine nature artim against Origen, there is an unmistakable
(Epiph. Haer. Ixxiii. c. 37, p. 885). [e.v.] quotation from the Apology (c. 24, p. 27 b)
Athanasius (3), bp. of Perrha, a see dependent with the name of Athenagoras appended.
on the Syrian Hierapolis; present at the council This fragment is given by Epiphanius {Haer.
of Ephesus, 431, supporting Cyril of Alex- 64, c. 21) and Photius {Cod. 224, 234). Scanty
andria. Grave accusations, brought against as this information is, it yet assures us of the
him by his clergy, led him to resign his see. existence of the Apology in the 3rd cent, and
Through the intervention on his behalf of its ascription to Athenagoras. Much more is
Proclus of Constantinople and Cyril of Alex- told us by Philippus Sidetes, deacon of Chry-
andria, Domnus IL, patriarch of Antioch, sostom (5th cent.), in a fragment preserved
summoned a council to consider the matter. by Nicephorus Callistus (Dodwell, Diss, in
Athanasius, refusing to appear, was unani- Irenaeum, 429) to this effect " Athenagoras :

mously condemned by default and deposed was the first head of the school at Alexandria,
from his bishopric, to which Sabinianus was flourishing in the times of Hadrian and An-
consecrated. After " the Robber Synod " toninus, to whom also he addressed his Apol-
of Ephesus, A.D. 449, had made Dioscorus of ogy for the Christians a man who embraced
;

Alexandria the temporary ruler of the Eastern Christianity while wearing the garb of a
church, Sabinianus was in his turn deposed, philosopher, and presiding over the academic
and Athanasius reinstated at Perrha. Sabini- school. He, before Celsus, was bent on
anus appealed to the council of Chalcedon, writing against the Christians and, studying ;
66 ATHENAGORAS ATHENAGORAS
the divine Scriptures in order to carry on the to this work are the inscription which it bears,
contest with the greater accuracy, was thus and the quotation by Methodius given above.
himself caught by the all-holy Spirit, so that, Some ind'^ed have supposed that when Jerome
like the great Paul, from a persecutor he speaks of an apology delivered by Justin
became a teacher of the faith which he Martyr to Marcus Antoninus Verus and Lucius
persecuted." Philippus says, continues Nice- Aurelius Commodus, he refers (since these ob-
phorus, " that Clemens, the writer of the tained the empire after Justin's death) to the
Stromata, was his pupil, and Pantaenus the Apology of Athenagoras and attributes it to
pupil of Clemens." But Philippus's statement J ustiu but it appears that he intends Marcus
;

about Pantaenus is not true, according to Aurelius and Lucius Verus (Mosheim, Dissert,
Clemens and Eusebius his character as an
; ad Hist. Eccles. pertinent, i. 279), to whom
historian is severely criticized, and his book Justin's Lesser Apology was given (vid. Pro-
pronounced valueless by Socrates Scholasticus legomena to Maranus's Justin, pt. iii. c. 8, § 4,
{Hist. Eccl. vii. 27) and Photius [Cod. 35, p. 7, pp. 93 sqq.). Attempts to prove the work in
Bekker) and his assertion that the Apology
;
question to be that of Justin (vid. Le Moyne,
was addressed to Hadrian and Antoninus is Varia sacra, ii. 171), or of a later author (vid.
contradicted by its very inscription. Never- Semler, Introduction to Baumgarten's Theolog.
theless, as he was a pupil of Rhodon (head Streitigkeiten, ii. 70 note) have alike failed.
of the school in the reign of Theodosius the There is nothing whatever in the writings of
Great) he may be supposed to have had some Athenagoras unsuitable to their assigned age ;

facts as the groundwork of what he has said. and Athenagoras's name was not sufficiently
The only other source of information about known to have been selected for the author of
Athenagoras is the inscription of his Apology a supposititious book.
with such internal evidence as may be gath- Date. —
This is a difficult question some
;

ered from his works themselves. The inscrip- have taken the Commodus of the inscription
tion runs thus " The embassy (wpeaiieia.) of
: for Lucius Aelius Aurelius Verus (d. 169), son-
Athenagoras of Athens, a Christian philoso- in-law and brother of Marcus Antoninus. But
pher, concerning Christians, to the emperors Lucius Aelius Aurelius Commodus, Antoninus's
Marcus Aurelius, Antoninus, and Lucius son and successor, must be intended for ;

Aurelius Commodus, Armeniaci, Sarmatici, Verus dropped the name of Commodus after
and, greatest of all, philosophers." Without obtaining a share in the government, and
at present considering the peculiar difficulties could never have been called Sarmaticus for ;

involved in this inscription (of which below), Sarmatia was not conquered till after his
we learn from it in general that Athenagoras death. Mommsen, following Tentzel, but
was an Athenian and a philosopher, which without MS. authority, would read Tipna.vLKoii
character and profession he evidently retained for 'ApfxevLaKols. As little right had Com-
after his conversion. His connexion with modus to the title of " philosopher." Athen-
Athens (probably his birth there) and pro- agoras may have only intended to include the
fession of philosophy are thus substantiated ; son in the honours of the father. At all
and the manner in which he became converted events, the illustration (at c. 18, p. 17 d) of
to Christianity may very well have been as the Divine government, taken from that of
described by Philippus, whose account that the two emperors, father and son, seems
he was head of the Academics is probably but conclusive. We
have also allusions to the
an exaggeration of the fact that he had be- profound peace of the empire, appropriate
longed to that sect. That he was ever leader only between a.d. 176, when Avidius Crassus's
of the Catechetical school of Alexandria cannot insurrection was crushed, and a.d. 178, when
be definitely proved. In the Commentatio of the outbreak of the Marcomannic wars
Clarisse, § 8, is the acute conjecture that the occurred. The Apology cannot well have
treatise de Resurrectione was written at been of later date than a.d. 177, since in that
Alexandria rather than Athens, from c. 12, year arose the fearful persecution of the
p. 52 A, where the builder of a house is repre- Christians of Vienne and Lyons, upon the
sented as making stalls for his camels and
; accusations brought by their slaves whereas
;

on a supposed Alexandrian tinge in the philo- in c. 35, p. 38 B, Athenagoras declares that


sophy Athenagoras vide Brucker (Hist.
of no slaves of Christians had ever charged their
Crit. Philosophiae, iii. 405 seq.). Of his death masters with the crimes popularly imputed to
nothing is known, the idea that he was them nor is there any allusion whatever to
;

martyred apparently arising from a confusion this persecution, which would hardly have
between him and Athenogenes. That the been passed over in silence. Wetherefore
Apology was really intended to be seen and conclude that the Apology was written be-
read by the emperors is obvious how it
;
tween the end of a.d. 176 and that of a.d. 177.
reached them is less clear
entitled to assert that
we are hardly
;

it was in any formal or


Analysis. —
The Apology consists of cate-
gorical answers to the three charges usually
public manner delivered to them by Athen- brought against the Christians, of (a) atheism,
agoras himself, an idea which may be due to (b) incest, and (c) cannibalism, (a) They wor-
the title it bears, of npeffjieia, or " Embassy." ship one God, and can give a reason why.
npea^ela, however, according to Stephanus The philosophers have held hke views Poly- ;

(Thesaur. Ling. Graec. iii. col. 543), is occasion- theism and its worship are absurd, modern,
ally used for an apology, intercession, or and the work of demons, (b"^ Incest is most
deprecation. contrary to their pure and even ascetic life.
II. Genuine Works. — These are, (i) the (c) They are even more humane than the
Apology; (2) the Treatise on the Resurrection heathen, condemning abortion, infanticide,
of the Dead. and gladiatorial games as murder.
(i) Apology. Genuineness. — The testimonies (2) Treatise on the Restirrectton Genuine-

ATHENAGORAS ATHENAGORAS 67

ness and Date. —There isno independent shews no little thought and ability and his
;

external evidence for the authorship of this whole writings indicate a philosophic mind,
work ; but there is no reason whatever to which amply justifies the title given to him in
doubt that, as its inscription informs us, it the inscription of his two works.
is from the pen of Athenagoras. It closely His style, however, is not unfrequently
agrees with the Apology in style and thought, somewhat obscured by difficult elliptic or
and all that has been said above of the internal parenthetical passages, and anacolutha (for
evidence for the genuineness of the former examples of which see the Apology, c. i, p. 2 c ;

work applies equally to this. That such a c. 20, p. 19 B ; c. 22, p. 23 B and de


;

treatise was in Athenagoras's mind when he Resurr. c. 18, p. 60 d). Among his peculiar
wrote the Apology appears from the words words and phrases, Clarisse notices his use of
near its close, c. 36, p. 39 c, " let the argument &yeLv in the sense of ducere, to think, and ret
upon the Resurrection stand over " ; from eTrLav,ulieiiTjK6Ta 9ea3 for the attributes of God.
which words we may not unfairly gather that IV. His Philosophy. —Mosheim represents
the Treatise on the Resurrection shortly fol- Athenagoras as having been the first of the
lowed the former work. This is the only clue Eclectics. It is far more true to say that he
to its date which we possess. From the shared in the eclecticism which then pervaded
closing sentences of c. 23 (p. 66 c) it seems all philosophy. That he had been a Platonist
that it was intended as a lecture. " We have appears, on the whole, from his continual
not made it our aim to leave nothing unsaid reference to Plato and the thoroughly Pla-
that our subject contained, but summarily to tonic view which on many points pervades his
point out to those who came together what works. We easily recognize this view in his
view ought to be taken in regard to the language about matter and the souls, angels,
Resurrection " must allude not merely to a natures sensible and intelligible, and the con-
few friends who might happen to be present templation of God as the end of man's being ;

when the book was read, but to a regular and also in that referring to the Son of God as
audience. From a reference, c. i, p. 41 b, to the Logos and Creator (except that this is not
an occasional mode for arranging his argu- at all peculiar to Athenagoras), more especially
ments, it may be supposed that x\thenagoras in his calling the Word " idea (or archetype)
was in the habit of delivering public lectures and energy " in the work of Creation. He
upon Christianity. The arrangement, too, also appears to allude slightly to the doctrine
and peculiar opening of the treatise decidedly of reminiscences (de Resurr. c. 14, p. 55 a).
favour the view that it was a lecture, some- The Platonism of Athenagoras was modified,
what enlarged or modified for publication. however, by the prevailing eclecticism (cf.
Analysis. —
The work consists of two parts e.g. the Peripatetic doctrine of the mean, so
:

(i) The removal of the objections (i) that God alien to Plato, Resurr. c. 21, p. 64 b), and still
wants the power (2) or the will to raise the more, of course, by his reception of Christian-
dead, (i) He does not want the power to do ity, which necessitated the abandonment of
it, either through ignorance or weakness such views as the unoriginated nature of the
as Athenagoras proves from the works of soul. With all this agrees excellently so much
creation defending his positions against the
; of Philippus Sidetes's account as connects
philosophic objections, that the bodies of men Athenagoras with the Academics whose ;

after dissolution come to form part of other Platonism was precisely such as is here de-
bodies and that things broken cannot be re-
; scribed. Allusions to the other philosophers
stored to their former state. (2) God wants are abundant e.g. to Aristotle and the Peri-

not the will to raise the dead for it is neither
;

patetics, Apol. c. 6, p. 7 A c. 16, p. 15 D


; to ;

unjust to the raised men, nor to other beings ; the Stoics, ib. c. 6, p. 7 b to the Cyrenaics
;

nor unworthy of Him—


which is shewn from and Epicureans, Resurr. c. 19, p. 62 b. We
the works of creation, (ii) Arguments for see from Apol. c. 7, p. 8 a, that he regarded
the Resurrection, (i) The final cause of the Gentile philosophers as possessing some
man's creation, to be a perpetual beholder of measure of Divine light in their minds, but
the Divine wisdom. (2) Man's nature, which unable thereby to come to the full know-
requires perpetuity of existence in order to ledge of God, because this could only be ob-
attain the true end of rational life. (3) The tained by revelation, which they never sought.
necessity of the Divine judgment upon men in V. Theology, etc. —
Athenagoras's proof of
body and soul, (a) from the Providence, (b) the Divine unity rests on the propositions,
from the justice of God. (4) The ultimate expressed or implied, that God is perfect, self-
end of man's being, not attainable on earth. existent, uncompounded the Creator, Sus-

;

III. Athenagoras as a Writer. To most of tainer, and Ruler of the universe. Were there
the apologists Athenagoras is decidedly more gods than one, they could not co-exist
superior. Elegant, free from superfluity of and co-work as a community of beings similar
language, forcible in style, he rises occasion- to each other, in the same sphere for things
;

ally into great power of description, and his self-existent and eternal cannot be like a
reasoning is remarkable for clearness and number of creatures formed all on one pattern,
cogency e.g.
; his answer to the heathen but must be eternally distinct and unlike.
argument, that not the idols, but the gods They could not be parts of one whole, for God
represented, are really honoured. His treat- has no parts. There could be no place for
ment of the Resurrection is for the most part another God in connexion with this universe,
admirable. Even where the defective science for the Creator is over and around His own
of the day led him into error, e.g. in answering works. Another God, confined to some other
the question, apparently so difficult, as to the universe of his own, could not concern us ;
assimilation of the materials of one human and so would be but a finite being.
body into another the line taken is one that —
The Son of God. In God, since He is ao
68 ATHENAGORAS ATHENAGORAS
eternal, rational Mind, there dwelt from eter- of fallen angels, or their offspring by human
nity the " Logos " (" Reason," " Expression," wives, a view common with the apologists.
or " Word ") as His Son, and in the Son The evil angels he regards as having fallen by
dwelt the Father. To bring matter into misuse of free will, as did also man cf. Apol.
;

existence, and afterwards give it form and c. 25, p. 29 B. Of infants he remarks (Resurr.
order, the Divine Word " came forth " {i.e. the 614, p. 55 d) that they need no judgment,
eternal Son assumed, towards the finite, the inasmuch as they have done neither good nor
office and relation of " the Word " or Mani- evil. The nature of the scheme of redemption
f ester of God), to be the Archetype and is not treated of by Athenagoras.
Effectuating Power of creation [Apol. c. lo, VI. Was Athenagoras a Montanist? This —
p. 10 d). His Incarnation is only indirectly idea was suggested by Tillemont, who founds
mentioned, in the supposition at c. 21, p. 21 d it upon two points in the opinions of Athen-
(ib.), of God assuming flesh according to divine agoras, his account of prophecy, and his abso-
dispensation. lute condemnation of second marriages. In
The Holy Ghost is said to be the Spirit Who the Apology, c. 9, p. 9 d, Athenagoras's view
spoke by the prophets, and an Emanation of inspiration is thus given " who " (i.e. the
:

from God (Apol. c. 10, p. 10 d), flowing forth prophets) " rapt in mind out of themselves by
and returning as a ray from the sun. It has the impulse of the Spirit of God, uttered the
hence been much disputed whether Athen- things with which they were inspired the
;

agoras believed the Blessed Spirit to be a Spirit using them as if a flute player were
distinct Person, or not. His expressions breathing into his flute." With this has been
greatly resemble those used by some whom compared the language of Montanus (Epi-
Justin condemns for their denial of the per- phanius Panar. Haer. 48, c. 4, p. 405), where
sonality of the Son: "They say that this the prophet is said to be as a lyre, the Spirit
virtue is indivisible and inseparable from the like the plectrum. So Tertullian, Against
Father, as the sunlight on earth is indivisible Marcion, c. 22. Yet similar language is found^
"
and inseparable from the sun in the heavens in Justin (Dial. c. Tryph. c. 115, p. 343 a) \

(Dial. c. Tryph. c. 128, p. 338 b). But it and Athenagoras may only mean that the
must be remembered that the apologists prophet was carried beyond himself by the
present the actings and offices of the three Holy Spirit, and that the words uttered were
Blessed Persons of the Godhead in creation, not his own. The severe condemnation of
etc., rather than Their eternal subsistence and ; second marriage, in the works of Athenagoras,
of necessity do this in a form intelligible to a is doubtless a point of contact with the Mon-
heathen mind, yet so as not to be confounded tanists ; but the same view is very common
with polytheism. It is not doubted that with the Greek Fathers (vid. Hefele's Beitrdge,
Athenagoras held the personality of the vol. i. lect. 2). Moreover, of the authority and
Father, but with " God the Father, and God office of the Paraclete, in the sense attributed
the Son" (Apol. c. 10, p. 11 a) he joins as to Montanus, there is no trace in the writings
third, the Holy Spirit ; so also c. 12, p. 62 d, of Athenagoras.
and again c. 24, p. 26 d. That two Divine VII. Quotations of Scripture, Early Writers,
Persons and an impersonal emanation should etc. —
The inspiration of Scripture is strongly
be thus enumerated together by so philosophic stated by Athenagoras, e.g. Apol. c. 9, p. 9 d.
a writer as Athenagoras is not conceivable. He is seldom careful to quote exactly, so that

The angels, too indubitably personal beings it is not always certain what version is em-
— are mentioned as holding a place after the ployed probably the Septuagint throughout.
;

Trinity, in Christian theology (c. lo) ; and it From the N.T. he often quotes or borrows
is worthy of notice that, in the passage cited phrases, without mentioning whence they
above from Justin, angels as well as the Word come. It is treated as authoritative amongst
are described by the persons whom that writer Christians its maxims being used shewing
;

is condemning as temporary appearances as ; their discipline and practice (vid. Lardner,


if it were the Sadducees, or some similar J ewish Credibility Clarisse, Athenag. § 55).
;

sect, of which he is speaking. We are, there- It has been disputed whether Athenagoras
fore, decidedly of opinion that the personality refers to other Christian writers, especially the
of the Holy Spirit is held by Athenagoras cf. ; Apology of Justin Martyr, which some con-
however, Clarisse. sider him to have made the foundation of his
Man he holds to be composed of body and own. Certainly the resemblance between
soul, the latter immortal, with spiritual powers them seems too great to be the result of
of its own (Apol. c. 27, p. 31 a) but assigns
; accident alone. Both J ustin and Athenagoras
the rational judgment not to the soul alone, urged that Christians were unconvicted of
but to the whole compound being, man ;
any crime, that the mere name does not
perhaps implying that in the actings and deserve punishment, and that they were no
expression of thought both the mind and the more Atheists than the poets and the philo-
bodily organs share. Hence he shews that sophers and both, in a similar manner, shew
;

the soul without the body is imperfect that


; the unworthiness of sacrificial worship. They
only when embodied can man be justly judged, give very much the same view of the Christian
or render to God perfect service, in a heavenly way of life and both lay great stress on
;

life. The sin and misery of man are described, chastity, and on the confining of marriage to
in the Platonic manner, as entanglement with its sole end, the begetting of children. Nearly
matter (Apol. c. 27, p. 30 c), and missing the the same account of the fall of the angels is
true aim of his existence (Resurr. c. 25, p. found in both the same books are quoted,
:

68 b) which is said to be the state of the


; often the same passages by both the very
;

majority, a prevalence of evil which he con- same phrases are occasionally employed.
nects with the influence of the demons, i.e. This correspondence is especially seen between

i
ATTICUS ATTILA 69

the exordium of Justin's first Apology and being compelled to leave their sees and take
that of Athenagoras. Hence Clarisse infers other dioceses in the inhospitable regions of
{Comm. in Athenag. § 57) that Athenagoras Thrace, where they might be more under
intended to rearrange and epitomize the work Atticus's eye and hand (Socr. vii. 36 Niceph.
;

of his predecessor. In the treatise On the xiii. 30 Pallad. c. xx.).


;

Resurrection, c. 8, p. 48 c, is an apparent Unity seemed hardly nearer when the death


imitation of Tatian, Or. ad Graec. c. 6, p. 146 b. of Chrysostom (Sept. 14, 407) removed the
VIII. Editions. —
A good ed. of Atiienagoras original ground of the schism. A large pro-
is that of Otto (Jena, 1857) its text is based
; portion of the Christian population of Con-
on the three earliest MSS. (viz. the Cod. Paris. stantinople still refused communion with the
CDLI., Cod. Paris. CLXXIV., and Cod. Ar- usurper, and continued to hold their religious
gentoratensis), with which the rest have been assemblies, more numerously attended than
collated, some for the first time the most
; the churches, in the open air in the suburbs
recent is by E. Schwartz, Leipz. 189 1 [Texte of the city (Niceph. xiv. 23, 27), until Chry-
und Untersuchungen, iv. 2). There is an Eng. sostom's name took its place on the registers
trans, in the Ante-Nicene Fathers. and in the public prayers of the church of
IX. Spurious Works. —
From a careless ex- Constantinople.
pression of Gesner, in reference to the books Atticus's endeavours were vigorously di-
of Antoninus, Hepl tQv eh eavrhv, a notion rected to the maintenance and enlargement of
arose of the existence, amongst Gesner's the authority of the see of Constantinople.
books, of a work by Athenagoras with the He obtained a rescript from Theodosius sub-
above title an idea which, though wholly
;
jecting to it the whole of lUyria and the
erroneous, was entertained by Scultatus, and " Provincia Orientalis." This gave great
at one time by Tentzel, with some others. offence to pope Boniface and the emperor
About the close of the i6th cent, there Honorius, and the decree was never put into
appeared a French romance, entitled Du vray execution. Another rescript declaring his
et par fait Amour, purporting to be a work of right to decide on and approve of the election
Athenagoras, trans, by M. Fumee, Seigneur of all the bishops of the province was more
de S. Geuillac. Its many anachronisms and effectual. Silvanus was named by him bp.
whole character prove it, however, the work of Philippolis, and afterwards removed to
of some later author, probably Fumee him- Troas. He asserted the right to ordain in
self. Certainly no Greek original has ever Bithynia, and put it in practice at Nicaea, a.d.
been produced. 425, a year before he died (Socr. vii. 25, 28, 37).
The following may be consulted Clarisse, : He also displayed great vigour in combat-
Comm. in A then.
Hefele, Beitrdge
; Mohler, ;
ing and repressing heresy. He wrote to the
Patrol. ;J. Donaldson, Hist. Christ. Lit. L. ; bishops of Pamphylia and to Amphilochius of
Arnould, deApol. Athen. (Paris, 1898). [s.m.] Iconium, calling on them to drive out the
Atticus, archbp. of Constantinople, suc- Messalians (Phot. c. 52). The zeal and energy
ceeding Arsacius in March 406. He died he displayed against the Pelagians are highly
Oct. 10, 426. Born at Sebaste in Armenia, commended by pope Celestine, who goes so
he early embraced a monastic life, and re- far as to style him " a true successor of St.
ceived his education from some Macedonian Chrysostom " (Labbe, Cone. iii. 353, 361, 365,
monks near that place. Removing to Con- 1073 ;cf. S. Prosper, p. 549 S. Leo. Ep.
;

stantinople, he adopted the orthodox faith, cvi. ; Theod. Ep. cv.). His writings were
was ordained presbyter, and soon became quoted as those of an orthodox teacher
known as a rising man. He proved himself by the councils of Ephesus and Chalcedon
one of Chrysostom's most bitter adversaries. (Labbe, iii. 518, iv. 831).
If not, asPalladius asserts (c. xi.), the architect Atticus was more an actor than a writer ;

of the whole cabal, he certainly took a very and of what he did publish little remains. A
leading part in carrying it into execution. treatise On Virginity, combating by anticipa-
The organization of the synod of the Oak tion the errors of Nestorius, addressed to
owed much to his practical skill (Phot. Cod. Pulcheria and her sisters, is mentioned by
59). The expulsion of Chrysostom took Marcellinus, Chron. sub ann. 416, and Gen-
place June ro, 404. His successor, the aged nadius, de Scrip. Eccl. c. 52.
Arsacius, died Nov. 5, 405. Four months of Socrates, who is a partial witness, attributes
intrigue ended in the selection of Atticus. to him a sweet and winning disposition which
Vigorous measures were at once adopted by caused him to be regarded with much affec-
Atticus in conjunction with the other members tion. Those who thought with him found in
of the triumvirate to which the Eastern him a warm friend and supporter. Towards
church had been subjected, Theophilus of his theological adversaries he at first shewed
Alexandria, and Porphyry of Antioch, to great severity, and after they submitted,
crush the adherents of Chrysostom. An changed his behaviour and won them by
imperial rescript was obtained imposing the gentleness (Socr. vii. 41 Soz. viii. 27). [e.v.]
;

severest penalties on all who dared to reject Attila, king and general of the Huns. For
the communion of the patriarchs. A large the facts of his life and his personal and moral
number of the bishops of the East persevered characteristics see D. of G. and R. Biogr. It
in the refusal, and suffered a cruel persecu- comes within our scope only to note his in-
tion ; while even the inferior clergy and laity fluence upon Christendom ; though, through-
were compelled to keep themselves in conceal- out, it is to separate legend from
difficult
ment, or to fly the country. The small history. series of events between
The rapid
minority of Eastern bishops who for peace's the Hunnish attack on the Eastern empire in
sake deserted Chrysostom's cause were made 441 and the battle of Chalons in 451 has been
to feel the guilt of having once supported it, compared to a deluge of rain which sweeps a
:

70 ATTILA AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS


districtand leaves no further trace than the Orleans was only relieved by the influence of
debris which the torrent has washed down. the senator Avitus of Clermont, who secured
But in Eastern Europe, though Attila's the help of Theodoric, when the gates had
kingdom was dismembered at his death, the actually been opened to the Huns and pillage
great body of the Huns, who had followed him was beginning (Vita S. Aniani, in Bouquet,
from the wilds of Central Asia, settled per- Rec. i. 645). Attila retreated precipitately
manently in the wide plains of the Lower towards Chalons-sur-Marne, in the Campi
Danube while, viewed as a special instru-
;
Catalaunici. Near Troyes he was met by its
ment of Providence, " a Messiah of grief and bishop, Lupus (St. Loup), at whose inter-
ruin," whose mission it was to chastise the cession Attila spared the defenceless inhabit-
sins of Christians, the " scourge (or rather flail) ants of Champagne, carrying Lupus with
of God" had an abiding influence over Western him as a hostage to the banks of the Rhine.
Christendom, and the virtues and merits of For the subsequent military movements and
the saints who thwarted him by bold resist- the battle of Chalons, see Thierry, Hist.
ance or prudent submission shone forth the d' Attila, pp. 172-188,428-437, and art. "Attila"
brighter, the darker became the picture of in the Nouv. Biog. Gen. In the spring of 452
the oppressor. Attila penetrated into Italy by the passes
Portents in sky and earth announced to the of the Julian Alps (Prosp. Aquit. Chron.),
inhabitants of Gaul that the year 450 was the Aetius having sent Valentinian for safety to
opening of a terrible epoch (Idat. Chron. ann. Rome. Attila received his first check at the
450). Servatius, bp. of Tongres, visiting walls of Aquileia; but after three months'
Rome to consult St. Peter and St. Paul, was resistance he observed some storks preparing
informed that Gaul would be entirely devas- to leave their nests with their young (Jorn.
tated by the Huns, but that he himself would Reb. Get. 42), and, taking this as a favourable
die in peace before the devastation came omen, redoubled the vigour of his siege, an4.
(Paul. Diac. ap. Bouquet, Rec. i. p. 649). a century afterwards Jornandes (ib.) could
Attila, strengthened by an alliance with Gen- scarcely trace the ruins of Aquileia. Milan
seric, king of the Vandals (Jorn. Reb. Get. 36), and Pavia were sacked, and probably also

had two pretexts for his attack- ^his claim Verona, Mantua, Brescia, Bergamo, and Cre-
to the hand of Honoria, and the vindication mona. An embassy, sent by the people and
of the rights of an elder son of a Frank prince senate of Rome, to endeavour to obtain
against his brother, whom Aetius had given Attila's peaceful evacuation of Italy, met the
possession of their paternal territory (Prise. invaders on the Mincio, near Mantua and
Exc. Leg. p. 40). Theodoric, king of the Goths, Vergil's farm. At its head were two illustrious
whose alliance was sought by both Attila and senators and the eloquent Leo the Great, who
Valentinian, inclined to the side of order, and had been bp. of Rome since 440. His appear-
the Hun, who now took the role of chastising ance in pontifical robes awoke in Attila some
his rebellious subjects, the Visigoths, marched feeling akin to awe, and he retired as before a
with five, or perhaps seven, hundred thousand power superior to his own. Soon after he died
warriors, including many Franks, Burgun- from the bursting of a blood-vessel, though
dians, and Thuringians (Sid. Apoll. Paneg. not without suspicion of foul play. Cf. Leo I.
Avit. V. 324), to the banks of the Rhine, which Undoubtedly the great and distinguishing
he crossed near Coblenz. He installed him- feature of the war in the eyes of 5th-cent.
self at Treves, the Roman metropolis of Gaul, Christians would be the threefold repulse of
which was pillaged. After one fruitless at- Attila, " the scourge of God" from Orleans by \

tempt, he entered Metz on Easter Eve, April St. Agnan, from Troyes by St. Loup, and,
8, slaughtered indiscriminately priests and above all, from Rome by St. Leo so signal ;

people, except the bishop, and reduced the a triumph was it of the church's spiritual
city to ashes, all the churches perishing except weapons over the hosts who were held to
the oratory of St. Stephen (Paul. Diac. ap. symbolize the powers of darkness and of Anti-
Bouquet, Rec. i. p. 650). Rheims, deserted by christ. It was the final and conclusive
its inhabitants, was easily reduced, and a Hun answer to the few heathen who still referred
struck off the head of its bishop, Nicacius, all the misfortunes of the empire to the
while he was precenting the words " Quicken desertion of the ancient polytheism. For a
me according to Thy word " (Ps. cxix. 25) discussion of the various national legends that
(Frodoard. Martyr. Remens. p. 113). Tongres, have clustered around Attila, " the hammer
Arras, Laon, and Saint-Quentin also fell. The of the world," see D. C. B. (4- vol. ed.), s.v.
inhabitants of Paris had resolved on flight, The leading authorities for his life are in
but the city was saved by the resolution and Gibbon's Roman Empire (ed. Smith), iv. 191
devotion of St. Genevieve (Genovefa), the (notes). See also his Life by Am. Thierry,
maiden of Nanterrc who was warned in a 1855. [CD.]
vision that Paris would be spared (Act. SS. Augustinus, Aurelius.
Boll. Jan. i. 143-147). Attila did not wish to A. Early Like. §§ — i, 2, Name, Materials
wage war against Christianity, though doubt- for biography § 3. ;
Early life § 4. ;

less some of his followers were stimulated by Manicheism § 5. Philosophical period


; ;

polemical rancour ;he fought against Rome, § 6.Conversion § 7. Early


;
Christian
not its church. Nor did he intend to give up life (a) as layman, (b) as presbyter.

:

Gaul to indiscriminate pillage he hoped to


;
B. Episcopate. § 8. Donatism (a) Origin, :

crush the Visigoths first, and then to cope (b) Early history, (c) Augustine and
separately with Aetius and the Roman forces. the schism §;
9. Paganism and the
About April 10 he left Metz for Orleans. de Civitate Dei § 10. Pelagianism
;

Anianus (St. Agnan), bp. of Orleans, hastened (a) Origin, (b) Zosimus and Julian, (c)

to Aries to apprise Aetius of their danger, but The semi- Pelagians, (d) Doctrinal

;

AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 'I

issues; § Augustine and Greek and nieces, Serm. 3563, see Bened. Life, I.
ii.
Christendom § 12. Augustine and the i. 4). He early shewed signs of pre-eminent
;

hierarchy : {a) Church authority and ability, and his parents, both of whom enter-
episcopate, {b) Equality of episcopate, tained the ordinary parental ambitions, found
(c) Rome and the episcopate Case of means to send him to school at the neigh-
:

Apiarius, (d) Rome and doctrinal bouring town of Madaura. Here, though he
authority, (e) Ultimate authority found the study of Greek distasteful, he made
§ 13. Death and character. good progress in fact it became clear that
C. Influence. — § 14. Writings § ;
;

15. he was ripe for the higher schools of Carthage,


Asceticism and the " Rule " The and he was withdrawn from Madaura. The
:

Church and property § 16. Intel- difficulty of


;
providing the means for his
lectual influence (a) Philosophic studies at the more expensive and distant
:

Theism, {b) Ecclesiasticism, (c) Pre- capital kept him at home for a year (369-370).
destinarianism § 17. Bibliography. He laments bitterly the company he kept and
A. Early Life. —
§ i. Name.
;


Orosius, Hist, the habits into which he fell at this period.
adv. Pagan. I. 4 ; Prosper, Car. de Ingrat. i. 3, The boyish freak of robbing a pear-tree with
and Chron. ad ann. 430 Claudian Mamert. his companions weighed heavily on his mind
;

de Stat. An. ii. 10; Bede, Vit. St. Cuthb., in later years [Conf. II. iv. ix.). He tells us,
give the name as above. The name Aurelius however, with shame, that in order not to be
is not given by Possidius, nor is it ever used outdone by his companions he boasted of
by Augustine himself nor by any of his cor- licentious acts which he had not committed.
respondents. But the Benedictine editors This may modify our natural inferences from
find it in the earliest MS. titles of his works, the self-accusing language of the Confessions.
and it is probably authentic. At last, aided by their wealthy and benevo-
§ 2. Materials for Biography. —
These are lent neighbour Romanianus, his parents were
exceptionally ample. For his first thirty- able to send him to Carthage. Here, at the
three years we have, in the Confessions, the age of sixteen, Augustine began his " univer-
most perfect of religious autobiographies (see sity " life, as a student of Rhetoric. Again
"
below, § 8, ad init.). The word " Confessions he speaks with an agony of remorse of his life
includes not only the idea of self-accusation, as a student. It is certain that he contracted
but also that of thanksgiving (see IX. vi. con- an irregular union, and in 372 he became the
fiteor tibi dona tua, and the use of confiteor in father of a son, Adeodatus. But he remained
the Vulgate Psalter). For his career as a faithful to his mistress until the very eve of his
Christian and a bishop, we possess an admir- conversion, and watched over his son's educa-
ably simple and graphic life by his pupil and tion and character. Eventually father and
friend Possidius, bp. of Calamis. The writings son were baptized together (see below, § 6 ;

and correspondence of Augustine himself also cf. Conf. VI. xv. 25). We must infer that
copiously supplement the narrative. The his life was on the whole above the average
Benedictine editors have worked up the level of student life in Carthage. He tells us
whole of the material into a very accurate that the " best set " among them were given
biography in eight books. It fills 513 columns to brutal horse-play, directed especially
of the Patr. Lat., and leaves little to be added against shy freshmen but although he
;

by others. (See below, § 17.) associated with these " eversores," he took
§ 3. Birth and Early Years (354-373). no part in their wild doings.
Augustine was born at Thagaste in Numidia In 371 his father had died, but, aided once
Proconsularis, on Nov. 13, 354 (for evidence more by the kindness of Romanianus, Mon-
as to this date, see Bened. Life in Patr. Lat. I. nica was able still to keep her son at Carthage.
118). His father Patricius, a jovial, sensual, Ambition for social success, and for a future
passionate man, and till near the end of his career at the bar, rather than any deeper
life a heathen, was one of the curiales of the motive, led him to pursue his studies with
town, but without large means. His mother ardour. But in his nineteenth year, while
Monnica was a Christian by parentage, con- reading Cicero's Hortensius, he became deeply
viction, and character. Augustine acknow- impressed with the supreme value of Wisdom,
ledged (de Vit. Beat. i. 6) that he owed his as contrasted with the vain hopes and fleeting
all to her ; conversely we can trace to her opinions of the world. From this time on-
an.xious care for her son's spiritual well-being ward he is a restless seeker after Truth (Conf.
a distinct deepening of her own character (see III. iv.). His first impulse was toward the
Conf. II. iii. sub fin. IX. viii. ix.). From his Scriptures, but their simplicity repelled him
; ;

mother he received the elements of Christian " they seemed to me to be far inferior to the
teaching, and, as he tells us, a devotion to the dignity of Tully."
very name of Jesus Christ which his later § 4. Manicheism (373-383). —
A baffled in-
spiritual wanderings never wholly extin- quirer, he was attracted by the Manichean
guished, and which forbade him to find satis- system, which appears to have been actively
faction in any writings which lacked it {Conf. pushed in Africa at this period. This is not
III. iv. 3). As a child he had a severe illness, the place for a description of Manicheism.
and demanded baptism. His mother had From Augustine's many allusions to its tenets,
agreed to allow it but when he recovered, in it appears to have been a strange medley of
;

accordance with the then prevailing dread of dualism and materialism, asceticism and
post-baptismal sin, she put off his baptism to licence, theosophy and rationalism, free-
riper years. Augustine was one of several thought and superstition. What specially
children (we read of his brother Navigius, attracted Augustine appears to have been the
Conf. IX. xi., de Beat. Vit. i. 6 a sister, Ep. high moral pretensions of the sect, their criti-
;

211*; nieces, Possid. xxvi. nephew Patricius cism of Scripture difficulties, and their explana-
;
—"

72 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS


tion of the origin of evil by the assumption § 5. —
Rome. Philosophy (383-386). Mainly
of an independent evil principle. For nine in disgust at the rough and disorderly students
years (373-382, Conf. IV. i., de Util. Cred. 2) of Carthage (Conf. V. viii.), Augustine now
Augustine was an ardent Manichean. He migrated to Rome. With bitter self-reproach
brought over his friends Alypius and Honor- he tells us of the deceit by means of which he
atus, and his patron Romanianus, to the same left his mother, who had followed him to
convictions, and delighted in controversy with Carthage, behind (Conf. V. viii.). At Rome,
Catholics. He remained an " auditor " only. his host was a Manichean, Alypius and other
The " electi " were bound to strict continence, Manichean friends surrounded him, and in a
and Augustine was increasingly conscious of severe illness he received the greatest kindness
the chasm between his ideal and his practice. from them all. But the students of Rome dis-
" Make me chaste, but not yet, "was his prayer appointed Augustine. They were less rude,
during this period of his life (Conf. VIII. vii.). but also less honest, than those of Carthage,
Augustine completed his studies, and returned especially in the matter of payment of their
to Thagaste as a teacher of grammar. His fees (Conf. V. xi.). Presently (about the
mother, overwhelmed with horror at his new summer of 384) Symmachus, the Praefectus
opinions, refused to receive him at home. At Urbi, was commissioned by the Milanese to
first, therefore, he lived with Romanianus. find them a professor of Rhetoric. Augustine,
Monnica's prayers were answered by a con- by the aid of his Manichean friends, obtained
soling dream (Conf. III. xi.) and a friend, a the post, and travelled, at the public expense,
bishop, himself a convert from Manicheism, to Milan. Here he was attracted by the elo-
whom she entreated to argue with her son, quence of Ambrose, then at the height of his
while wisely refusing her request, dismissed fame, and soon made his acquaintance. " I
her with the words, " It cannot be that the son began to love him, not at first as a teacher of
of those tears of yours should be lost." She the truth, which I despaired of finding in Thy
accepted the words as a voice from Heaven, Church, but as a fellow-creature who was kincT
and received Augustine into her household. to me." Contemptuous of the subject-matter

The death of a dear friend Augustine was a of his sermons, Augustine listened to them as
man of warm
friendships (Conf. IV. ix.) an interested professional critic. " cared
I
moved him to leave Thagaste, and return, as not to understand what he said, but only to
a teacher of Rhetoric, to Carthage. Here he hear how he said it." But it was impossible
studied zealously, devoting attention to the to keep form and substance wholly apart, and
" liberal arts," astronomy, and other sub- by degrees he began to realize that the case for
jects, and lived a life of cultivated society and Catholic Christianity was not wholly beneath
successful literary effort. He tells us of a discussion. This was especially the case with
prize poem which won a crown in the theatre regard to the O.T., a principal target for
from the proconsul Vindicianus, a wise old Manichean ridicule. The allegorical method
physician who convinced him (but see Conf. of exegesis by which Ambrose explained every
VII. vi.) of the futility of astrology (Conf. IV. difficulty struck away the substratum of
iii. ;this apparently occurred at Carthage). literalism upon which Manichean objections
About this time he wrote a work in two or were based. " For while read those Scrip-
I
three books, de Pulcro et Apto, which he in- tures in the letter, I was slain in the spirit."
scribed to Hierius, a professor of Rhetoric at But though one main foundation of his Mani-
Rome, whom he had come to admire by cheism was thus giving way, the materialistic
reputation. These books he did not preserve ;
presuppositions remained. " Had I been able
they appear to have been his first. Mean- to conceive of a spiritual substance, all their
while, he began to be less satisfied with the devices would have been broken, but this as
Manichean view of existence these mis-
; yet I found impossible." He remained in a
givings were intensified by disillusion in regard state of suspense his philosophic position
;

to the morals of the electi (de Moribus Man. was that of the " New Academy," one of pure
68 sqq.). But his Manichean friends urged negation. However, pending further light,
him to await the arrival at Carthage of Faust- he resumed the position he had occupied in
us, a " bishop " of the sect, who enjoyed a boyhood ofa catechumen in the Catholic
reputation for brilliant ability and learning, church (Conf. V. xiv.). Alypius, who was in
and who could be trusted to resolve all his legal practice, had accompanied him to Milan,
doubts. But when the great Faustus appeared, and presently their friend Nebridius joined
Augustine soon discovered him to be a very them. Monnica, probably accompanied by
ordinary person, " of charming manner and his brother Navipius, soon followed her son to
pleasant address, who said just what the others Milan (Conf. VI. ix.). The friends appear
used to say, but in a much more agreeable (Conf. VIII. viii.) to have hired a roomy house
style" (Conf. V. iii. 6). When, after his and garden. Augustine's worldly prospects
addresses to the crowd, Augustine laid before seemed excellent, a career of official distinction
him some of his doubts, his mediocrity was was opening before him (Conf. VI. xii.) his ;

transparent. " He knew that he did not mother, hoping that it would lead to his bap-
know, and was not ashamed to confess the tism, encouraged him in the selection of a wife.
fact . and for this I liked him all the
. . But two years had to pass before the lady was
better." But he liked the system all the lessof age (Conf. VI. xiii.).
;
Meanwhile his mis-
and without formally separating from the tress was dismissed (ib. xv.), to his and her
Manicheans, he adopted an " academic great grief, and Augustine took another.
suspense of judgment in regard to the opinions Augustine was now thirty years of age. He
he had hitherto adopted henceforth he held had almost wholly shaken off Manicheism, and
;

them provisionally, pending the discovery of was, as his mother saw, steadily gravitating
something better [de Vii. Beat. i. 4). towards the Catholic church. His successful
AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 73

and interesting work, honourable position, told his tale, Augustine was filled with self-
and delightful social surroundings made his reproach. Conscience shamed him that after
lot outwardly enviable. But he pronounces, ten years of study he was still carrying a
and apparently with some truth, that at this burden which men wearied by no research had
period he touched his lowest moral level (Conf. already cast aside. When Pontitianus had
VI. xvii., VII. i., VIII. v.). At any rate gone, he poured out his incoherent feelings to
the contrast between his actual life and his the astonished Alypius, and then, followed by
habitual idealism was never more painfully his friend, fled into the garden. " Let it be
realized. His ideal was the philosophic life, now — let it be now," he said to himself; but
and but for his matrimonial plans and his still the vanities of his life plucked at his clothes
active ambition, he would probably have and whispered, " Do you think you can live
joined his friends in founding a small philo- without us ? "
Then again the continence of
sophic community with a common purse and the monks and virgins confronted him with
household (Conf. VI. xiv. ;c. Academ. II. the question, " Can you not do as these have
ii. 4, de Beat. Vit. i. 4, ne in philosophiae done ? " Alypius watched him in silence.
gremium celeriter advolarem, uxoris honor- At last he broke down and, in a torrent of
isque illecebra detinebar). But his enthu- tears, left his friend alone. He threw himself
siasm burned low (c. Acad. II. ii. 5), until it down under a fig-tree, crying passionately,
was kindled afresh by his study of the Platonic " Lord, how long ? to-morrow and to-mor-
— —
philosophy. A friend (apparently Theodorus, row -why not now ? " Suddenly he heard
!


who became consul in 399 see Retr. I. ii. a child's voice from the next house repeating,
Displicet autem, etc., and Conf. VII. ix. in a sing-song voice, " Take and read " (tolle,
immanissimo typho turgidum) put into his lege). He tried to think whether the words
hands (Conf. VII. ix., de Beat. Vit. i. 4) some were used in any kind of children's game but ;

translations of the neo-Platonist authors, pro- no, it must be a divine command to open the
bably by Victorinus. The effect was rapid Bible and read the first verse that he should
and profound. Much Christian truth he happen upon. He thought of Anthony and
found there, but not inward peace :the the lesson in church. He ran back to Alypius
eternal Word, but not Christ the Word made and opened " the Apostle " at Rom. xii. 13,
flesh. But his flagging idealism was braced, 14, " Not in rioting and drunkenness, not in
he was once for all lifted out of materialism, chambering and wantonness, not in strife and
and his tormenting doubts as to the origin of envying but put ye on the Lord Jesus
;

evil were laid to rest by the conviction that Christ, and make not provision for the flesh
evil has its origin in the will, that evil is but to fulfil the " No further
lusts thereof."
the negation of good, and that good alone has would I read, necessary." The
nor was it
a substantive existence (Conf. VII. vii. xiv.). peace of God was in his heart, and the shadows
His first impulse was to give up all earthly of doubt melted away. He marked the pas-
ties {" omnesillas ancoras," Vit. Beat. 4), resign sage and told Alypius, the friends exchanged
his professorship, and live for philosophy confidences, and Alypius applied to himself
alone. But this he delayed to do, until, after the words, a little further on, " Him that is
his conversion, a serious lung-attack gave him weak in the faith receive" (Rom. xv. i).
what was now a welcome excuse (Conf. IX. They went in, and filled the heart of Monnica
ii., cf. SoUl. I. i. I
; c. Acad. I. i. 3
; de Beat. with joy at the news (Conf. VIII. viii.). It
Vit. i. 4). Meanwhile he read with care the was now the beginning of the autumn vaca-
Epistles of St. Paul, in which he found a tion. Augustine decided to resign his chair
provision for the disease of sin, which he had before the next term, and meanwhile wrote to
vainly sought in the Platonic books. But his Ambrose to announce his desire for baptism.
life remained unregenerate, and his distress His friend Verecundus, who was himself on
thickened. He then laid his case before the eve of conversion, lent his country house
Simplicianus, the spiritual adviser, and even- at Cassiciacum, near Milan, to Augustine and
tually the successor, of Ambrose. Simplici- his party there they spent the vacation and
;

anus described to him the conversion of the the months which were to elapse before bap-
aged Victorinus, to whose translation of the tism (winter 386-387). At Cassiciacum he
Platonists he had owed so much (Conf. VIII. spent a restful, happy time with his mother
ii.). Augustine longed to follow the example and brother, his son Adeodatus, Alypius, and
of his public profession of faith, but the flesh his two pupils, Licentius and Trygetius, the
still held him back, like a man heavy with former a son of his old patron Romanianus.
drowsiness who sinks back to sleep though he He wrote several short books here, "in a
knows that the hour for rising has struck. style which, though already enlisted in Thy
So he went on with his usual life. service, still breathed, in that time of waiting,
§ 6. Conversion (386-387). — One day a
Christian fellow-townsman, Pontitianus, who
the pride of the School" (Conf. IX. iv.).
These were the three books contra Acudemicos,
held an appointment at court, called to two de Ordine, the de Beata Vita, and two
visit Alypius. Observing with pleasure a books of Soliloquies to this period also belong
;

volume of St. Paul's Epistles, he went on to letters 1-4, of which 3 and 4 are the beginning
talk to his friends of the wonderful history of his correspondence with Nebridius (Conf.
of the hermit Anthony, whose ascetic life had IX. iii.). Ambrose had, in answer to his re-
begun from hearing in church a passage of quest for advice, recommended him to read
the gospel (Matt. xix. 21), on which he had Isaiah. But he found the first chapter so hard
promptly acted he then described the spread
; that he put it aside till he should be more
of the monastic movement, and informed his able to enter into its meaning. The Psalms,
astonished hearers that even at Milan there however, kindled his heart at this time. To
was a monastery in existence. As Pontitianus him, as to many in most diverse conditions,

74 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS


they seemed to interpret the depths of his assures us that the substance of the words was
soul and the inmost experiences of his Ufe really from the lips of his son at the age of
(Conf. IX. iv.). But Augustine's main in- sixteen, i.e. not later than 388. The boy died
tellectual interest was still philosophical. Ex- young, full of piety and promise we do not
;

cept when engaged upon the classics with his know the date, but he was present at Mon-
pupils, or on fine days in country pursuits (" in nica's death (Conf. IX. xi.), and very pro-
rebus rusticis ordinandis," c. Acad. I. v. 14 cf. bably lived to accompany his father to Africa.
;

II. iv. 10), the time was spent in discussing At Thagaste Augustine and his friends lived
the philosophy of religion and life. The above- on his paternal estate for nearly three years,
mentioned books, of which those de Ordine are a quiet, industrious, and prayerful life. Ne-
perhaps the most characteristic, are, excepting bridius (Ep. 5) condoles with him for having
of course the Soliloquies, in the form of notes to give so much time to the negotia civium but ;

of these discussions. The time to give in his evidently there was plenty of leisure for study.
name for baptism was approaching, and the We saw above (§ 6) that Augustine's studies
party returned to Milan. Augustine was were, up to the present, philosophical rather
baptized by Ambrose, along with his heart's than Biblical. His ordination found him still
friend Alypius, and his son Adeodatus. The but little versed in Scripture (Ep. 213). His
church music, which Milan, first of all the continued correspondence with Nebridius
Western churches, had recently adopted from (Epp. 5-14) shews the continued predominance
the East, struck deep into his soul " The tide of philosophical interest
: ; the same may be
of devotion swelled high within me, and the said of the writings of the period, de Genesi adv.
tears ran down, and there was gladness in Manichaeos, de Musica, de Magistro, de Vera
those tears." Religione, and parts of the Liber de Diversis
§ 7. (a) Early Christian Life. Death of Quaestionibus LXXXIH. The de Musica
Monnica. Return to Africa. Life as a Lay- was a portion of the above-named unfinished ~

man (387-391). While waiting for baptism work on the " liberal arts " he wrote it at :

at Milan, Augustine had written a short book, the request of an African bishop. It is inter-
de Immortalitate Animae, and the first part, de esting as giving one side of Augustine's view
Grammatica, of a work on the " Uberal arts " : of secular culture, for which he claims, in the
the latter, though included by Possidius in his spirit of Plato, that if rightly used, it leads
list of Augustine's literary remains, was early up to God, the underlying Truth of all things.
lost by him (Retr. I. vi.). After the baptism, The other works of this period are still per-
Augustine, with Alypius, and Evodius, a vaded with the Manichean controvers}'. This
fellow-townsman, converted before Augustine is the origin of the de Vera Religione, one of
himself, who had joined him at Milan, set out Augustine's ablest works ;
years later (about
for Africa, with the intention of continuing 414) he refers Evodius to it for the theistic
their common life. But at Ostia, Monnica argument (£/). 162, 2). There is a difference
was seized with fever, and died " in the fifty- of opinion as to the exact time at which
sixth year of her age, and the thirty-third of Augustine sold his father's estate, and as to
mine." Augustine's account of her life and the monastic or lay character of the life at
character, and of his conversations with her, Thagaste. The Benedictine Life (III. ii.-v.),
shortly before her death, on Eternal Life, maintaining that Augustine's settlement at
forms perhaps the most exquisite and touching Thagaste was strictly monastic, accounts for
part of the Confessions (IX. viii.-xiii.). He the fact that he hved on his patrimony by
prayed for her soul, believing that what he supposing that he did so as a tenant of the
prayed for was already performed. " Let purchaser. Of this there is no evidence
none have power to drag her away from Thy whatever. The most probable inference from
protection. . . For she will not answer that the crucial passage (Serm. 355, 2) combined
.

she owes nothing, lest she should be confuted with the statements of Possidius, is briefly as
and seized by the crafty accuser but she will follows
;
:
— Augustine and his friends Uved at
answer that her debt has been forgiven by his home in Thagaste, realizing approximately
Him, to Whom none can give back the ransom the ideal, formed already at Milan (Conf. VI.
which He paid on our behalf, though He owed xiv.), and partially realized at Cassiciacum,
it not." Augustine now remained in Rome of a common life of study and detachment
till the autumn of 388 (" jam post Maximi from worldly cares. The tendency to a mon-
tyranni mortem," c. lit. Petil. III. 30, cf. Retr. astic ideal was there, and as time went on,
I. vii.-ix.). Of his life there, the two books Augustine determined to sell his property,
de Morihus Ecclesiae Catholicae et de Moribus and find a home more suitable for a monastery.
Manichaeorum, the de QuantH ate Animae, and Possibly the importunate demands of his
the first of his three books de Libera A rbitrio, fellow-citizens upon his kindness (see above)
are the monument. From them we gather made Thagaste itself unsuitable. Hand in
that he lived with Evodius a life of " abun- hand with the question of the place went the
dant leisure," entirely given to the studies question of recruits. Augustine travelled to
begun at Cassiciacum. The book on the different places in search of a suitable site
morals of the Manicheans, founded on his avoiding towns where the see was vacant, for
former converse with them at Rome (see he knew that his growing fame might lead men
above, § 5), was reserved for completion and to think of him. Among other places, he came
publication in Africa (xii. 26). At last Augus- to Hippo (Bona), where he knew of a young
tine crossed with Alypius to Carthage (de Civ. official whom he hoped to enlist for his
XXII. viii.), and returned to Thagaste. A monastery (" juvenis veni ad istam civitatem,
work composed by him here, de Magistro quaerebani ubi constituerem monasterium . . .

(Conf. IX. vi. Retr. I. xii.), is in the form of veni ad istam civitatem propter videndum
;

a dialogue with Adeodatus, and Augustine amicum quem putabam lucrari me posse Deo
AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 75

ut nobiscum esset in monasterio." The of some length, as it was there that he held
monasterium is clearly prospective). This was his epoch-marking discussions of difficulties
probably early in 391. Augustine had come in the Ep. to the Romans, and at the re-
to Hippo intending to stay no time, " with quest of his friends committed the results to
nothing but his clothes " but as it happened,
;
writing (see below, § 10). We know that a
he entered the church just as Valerius, the council was held at Carthage in 394 pos-
:

aged bishop, was addressing the people on sibly that may have been the occasion of his
the necessity of choosing a new presbyter. presence. The Manichean controversy still
Valerius, by birth a Greek (Possid. v. "homo claimed his energies. In addition to the
natura Graecus "), wanted a fluent Latin public discussions already referred to, he
preacher. Augustine's reputation had come wrote at this time the famous tract de Uttlitate
before him. With one accord the people Credendi ;another, de Diiabus Animabus, a
seized Augustine, and presented him to Vale- tract against the Manichean Adimantus and ;

rius for ordination. With sincere reluctance the imperfect work de Genesi ad Ltteram, a work
and many tears Augustine yielded Hippo ;
which he abandoned, as he felt his novice-
became his home, and the Christian ministry hand unequal to the task (Retr. I. xviii. ;

his calling. Knowing of his plans, Valerius see below, § 14). A new task, imposed upon
gave him a monasterimn in the episcopal him by his official responsibiUties, was the
gardens. He had possibly already sold his controversy with the Donatists (see below,
small estate at Thagaste if not, he did so
; § 8). Early in his prcsbyterate he wrote to a
now the proceeds were spent on the poor of
: neighbouring bishop of that sect to remon-
that place, and the people of Hippo approved strate with him for rebaptizing (Ep. 23). He
and felt no jealousy (see Ep. 126^, 157'^^). also composed, for popular use, an acrostic
He assembled in his monastery a number of song in refutation of the sect (about 394 :

brethren like-minded, each with nothing of Psalmus contra partem Donati), and a tract,
his own and all things common above all,
; now lost, contra Epistolam Donati. To this
the common aim, " commune nobis ut esset period, lastly, belong a group of exegetical
magnum et uberrinum praedium ipse Deus." works which shew a rapid advance in the
Augustine a Presbyter of Hippo {391- command of Holy Scripture, the fruit of
(b)
395). —Augustine
at the time of his ordi- systematic study an exposition of the Ser-
:

nation as presbyter (he does not appear mon on the Mount, a commentary on Gala-
to have passed, as Ambrose had formally tians, some of the Quaestiones LXXXIII.
done, through the diaconate) was a Christian (supra, § 7 a), and the above-mentioned notes
Platonist. His temper was absolutely on Romans. He began a continuous commen-
Christian, his stock of ideas wholly Platonic. tary on the Epistle, but only succeeded in
He had used the Bible devotionally rather completing the Salutation. The de Mendacio
than worked at its theology. Fully conscious (see Retr. I. xxvii.) was also written at this
of this, he obtained from his bishop a short period, but its issue was deferred till about
period of leisure in order to master the mini- 420, when the contra Mend, was also published
mum of Scriptural knowledge necessary for (Retr. II. Ix.). Generally speaking, the works
the discharge of his of&ce (Ep. 21). At of this transition period are remarkable for the
Easter, 391, he was entrusted with the supersession of the philosophical form of the
traditio symboli. His addresses to the candi- older works by BibUcal, and to a great extent
dates for baptism on that occasion are still Pauline, categories. The philosophical sub-
extant (Serm. 214-216). He was, in fact, stratum of Platonism remains, but Augustine
soon full of work. His monastery, the first i s now a Biblical and ecclesiastical theologian.

in Africa (see below, § 15), became a training- (For a detailed analysis of the ideasdistinctive
school for clergy. Possidius tells us of ten of this and the preceding periods respectively,
bishops who proceeded from it. Among the see the masterly article of Loofs, mentioned
earUest were Alypius, who in 394 went to at the end of this article, pp. 270-276.) Lastly,
Thagaste, and Evodius, to Uzala. Possidius itjfias as a presbyter tihat he completed Jiis
himself became bp. of Calamus, but appears tliree^ books de Libera Arbitrio (supra, § 7«) :
to have spent much of his time at Hippo, they were directed against the Manichean
which was only some forty miles away. theory of the origin of evil (supra, § 4), and
Moreover, the example of the monastic life vindicate the moral responsibility of man
spread rapidly {Ep. 24, sub fin.) before
; against the theory of a physical principle of
Augustine died, there were at least three evil. — To the position taken up in tliese books
monasteries in Hippo alone {Vit. Ben. III. v. the Pelagians (infra, § 10) appealed, against
4). Of his life as a presbyter we know few Augustine's later doctrine of irresistible grace.
details. He corresponds with Aurelius, the Augustine has no difficulty in shewing that
new bp. of Carthage, with a view to putting he liad even at this early date refuted them by
down the disorderlv feasts over the tombs of anticipation. But it was less easy to meet
the martyrs {Epp.' 22, 29; Conf. V. ii.). At the appeal of the so-called semi- Pelagians (see
the end of Aug. 392, he held a public dis- below, § 10 d), who were on the side of the
cussion for two days with Fortunatus, a church against Pelagius, but demurred to
Manichean presbyter, the notes of which re- positions taken up by Augustine later in life.
main. Possidius tells us that as the result Of personal interest is Augustine's correspond-
Fortunatus left Hippo and never returned. ence with the saintly PauUnus of Nola, to
In 393 a general council of African bishops met whom he sent the books on Free Will.
at Hippo, and Augustine preached to them Paulinus had heard of the growing fame of
de Fide et Symbolo (one of his best-known Augustine, and sought his acquaintance by
shorter works) he also mentions (Reir. I.
; letters addressed to Alypius and to Augustine
33) a stay at Carthage which must have been himself (Epp. 24-27, 30-32). Augustine at this
76 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS
period also began to correspond with Jerome Orders. For to communicate with an offender
{Fp. 28) in a letter of about this date he
;
is to take part in his offence and Felix's ;

indignantly rejects the theory that the scene offence, ipso facto, cut him off from the
at Antioch between SS. Paul and Peter was church. Like Cyprian, the opponents of
to be explained patrocinium mendacii sus- Caecihanus denied the validity of any sacra-
cipiendo. ment conferred outside the church. These
B. Episcopate (from 393)-
(itist Controversy, (a) Origin.
——§ 8. The Don-
Valerius was
two principles, then, were involved firstly, the
old Cyprianic denial of the validity of sacra-
:

old arid infirm, and had marked out Augustine ments conferred by heretical (or schismatical)
as his successor. But he daily feared that hands secondly, the nullity of sacraments
;

some other church might elect him as bishop, performed by unworthy ministers " oleum :

"
and that he would therefore be lost to Hippo. peccatoris non impinguet caput meum
So, with the eager consent of his flock, he (Ps. cxl. Vulg.).
5, The question at issue,
took a step then almost without precedent, then, was really that of the essential nature of
and, unconsciously breaking the letter of the the church as a holy society (see Reuter, pp. 236
eighth canon of Nicaea, induced Megalius sqq. note 2). The Catholics, in reply, insist on
of Calama, the " primae sedis Episcopus," the fact that the church throughout the world
i.e. bishop senior by consecration in Numidia, is on their side, and that the Donatists are,
to consecrate Augustine as his coadjutor with by their separation, offenders against the bond
right of succession. Valerius had (Possid. of charity which maintains the peace and
viii.) privately gained the consent of Aurelius, unity of the church " Una est columba mea,
:

bp. of Carthage Megalius made some per- speciosa mea " (Cant. vi. 9).
sonal
;

objections, which he subsequently {b) Earlier History of Donatists. It is not —


withdrew (references in Vit. Ben. IV. i. 2). necessary here to detail the phases through
~
Valerius did not long survive the fulfilment of which the controversv had passed in the nearly
his hopes and prayers ; for nearly thirty-five three generations which preceded the episco-
years Augustine was bp. of Hippo. His pate of Augustine, nor to iinravel the intricate
episcopate was occupied by grave controver- charges and counter-charges which encumber
sies, and productive of monumental works ;
the real principles at issue. The principal
but it was not eventful as regards Augustine's landmarks in the question were (i) The appeal
:

personal history. It will be best, therefore, to Constantine, apparently first made by the
to deal with it, not by annalistic narrative, Donatists, which resulted in the adverse
but by considering in turn the great questions decisions of the councils of Rome (313) and
with which Augustine had to deal. We have Aries (314). (2) The consecration of Ma-
spoken sufficiently of the Manichean contro- jorinus as bp. of Carthage in opposition to
versy. As a bishop (about 397-400) Augustine Caecilianus (311). He died in 315, and was
wrote against these heretics the tracts c. Ep. succeeded by Donatus, a man of great energy,
Fundamenti and de A gone Chrisliano. The to whom the schism probably owes its name.
Confessions, written about this time, give an (3) Imperial persecution of the Donatists,
insight into Augustine's personal experiences first by Constantine in 316, and then, after an
of Manicheism (see above, §§ 2, 4). About attempt to bribe the Donatists into submission
400 he refuted, in thirty-three short books, a (340), a ruthless suppression by Constans in
treatise by his old Manichean friend Faustus ;
347. This was successful in producing tem-
at the end of 404 (Retr. II. viii., cf. Ep. 29) porary submission, but it intensified the feeling
he held a public discussion with a Manichean of protest moreover, the fanatical ferocity
;

named Felix, and as a result penned the short of the " Circumcellions," which Constantine's
tract de Natura Bant. Somewhat later he was first persecuting edict had evoked, was
brought into controversy with the Manichean smouldering in readiness to break out again.
" auditor " Secundianus. Of his reply he says, (4) Return of the Donatists under Juhan.
" omnibus, quae adversus illani pest em scribere In 361, agreeably to his general policy of the
potui, facile praepono." These are writings restoration of ecclesiastical exiles, Julian re-
drawn out by occasional contact with a con- pealed his predecessor's measures against the
troversy which Augustine had outgrown. It Donatists, and during his short reign they
was otherwise with the Donatist struggle, exercised a violent supremacy in Africa. (5)
which pressed continually upon him for the Optatus and Parmenian. Donatus had died
first twenty years of his episcopate. As we in exile, and was now succeeded by Parmeni-
have seen, it claimed some of his energy anus, an able and comparatively moderate
already as a presbyter. But it may fairly be man. With him begins the first phase of the
called the one great question of his earlier literary debate between Donatists and Catho-
episcopate. According to Possidius, the lics. The opponent of Parmenianus was Op-
Donatists were at the time of Augustine's tatus of Milevis, who was still living after 384.
ordination a majority among the Christians His work on the Donatist schism is a rich
f of the African
provinces at Hippo they were mine of materials for its history.
;
It is to be
a very large majority, and terrorized the noted that Parmenianus and Optatus both
Catholics by exclusive dealing (c. Dtias Lit. believe in the visible unity of the church.
Petit. II. 184). The schism had existed since But Parmenianus, insisting on the holiness of
about 311, when Caecilianus was elected bp. the church, identifies it with the separatist
of Carthage. Personal dislike to the election body in Africa, while Optatus insists upon
found a pretext for denying its validity. the Catholicity of the church, and upon its
Felix of Aptunga, his consecrator, was alleged Apostolicity as tested by communion with the

to have been a traditor i.e. to have given up chair of St. Peter and with the seven churches
the sacred books during persecution. This, it of the Apocalypse. (6) Disintegration of
was argued, vitiated his power to give valid Donatism. This began to be apparent in the
AUGUSTlNUS, AURELiUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELiUS 11

Mauretanian schism of Rogatus, whose fol- which we still have four books contra
:

lowers unchurched the other Donatists, and Cresconium one de Unico Baptismo, the Bre-
;

repudiated the Circumcellions ; in the moder- viculns Collationis (a report of the conference
ate Donatism of Tyconius (the author of a mentioned above), and a book contra Donatis-
work on exegesis, of which Augustine speaks tas post Collationem. After 412, physical force
highly, de Doctr. Chr. III. xxx.), who exposed had to some extent diminished the need for
the inconsistencies of the Donatist position, argument. A few more letters an address —
and was consequently excommunicated by to the people at Caesarea (Algiers), a public
Parmenianus and lastly, in the formidable discussion with Emeritus, on Sept. 20, 418,
;

Maximianist schism of 393, which resulted in two books contra Gaiidentium (a Donatist
the election of a second Donatist bishop, bishop, c. 420) —
are the remains of a waning
Maximianus, at Carthage, in opposition to controversy. For a fuller account of the history,
Primianus, the successor of Parmenianus. and of the contents of some of Augustine's
Over 100 bishops sided with Maximianus ; a anti-Donatist writings, see art. Donatism,
council of 310 Donatist bishops in 394 decided D. C. B. (4- vol. ed.).
against him. The civil authority was then It remains to gather up briefly the import- jk
invoked against the dissidents, who were per- ance of the controversy in Augustine's life and
secuted with the usual severity. thought. So far as Donatism fell before ar-
Meanwhile the council of Hippo in 393 gument, its fall was the work of Augustine.
{supra, § 7 6) had, by judicious reforms and But what was the reflex effect of the contro-
conciliatory provisions, paved the way back versy upon Augustine himself ? Augustine
to the church for any Donatists who might was the first Christian writer who made the
be disillusioned by the inward breakdown of church, as such, the subject of systematic
the sect. But its external position was still thought. But this was not wholly the result
imposing. Edicts issued against the Dona- of the Donatist crisis. He fought Donatism
tists (since 373, Cod. Theod. XVI. vi.) by in part with arguments which had been current
Valentinian and Gratian had had, owing to the for over two generations of the controversy,
state of the empire, but little effect. The and which we find less lucidly formulated in
edict of Theodosius against heretics (392, Cod. Optatus, partly with conceptions which his
Theod. XVI. v.) was not enforced against own personal history and reflections had im-
them in fact, from some time previous to
; pressed upon his mind before he came into the
the death of Theodosius in 395 till 398 the conflict. The utmost that can justly be said
imperial writ did not run in the African — but that much is important is that the —
\ provinces. Donatist conflict crystallized ideas which
^^ (c) Augustine and Donatism. — When needed a shock of the kind to bring them into
Stilicho recovered Africa for Honorius from clear shape and form. It was beside the
the usurper Gildo, Augustine had been a purpose to insist, as Cyprian had done, upon
bishop seven years. He had preached, cor- the episcopate, which the Donatists possessed,
responded, and written actively against the or upon the unity of the church, which they
Donatists, who had heard his sermons and claimed for themselves. The question at issue
read his tracts in great numbers. Their went behind these points to the spiritual
leaders had realized that they were now op- conditions necessary to the saving efficacy of
posed by a champion of unexampled power, means of grace. This exists, argued Augustine,
and endeavoured to keep their publications only in the Catholic church. The baptism "
from falling into his hands. His earliest epis- and orders of the Donatists were valid sacra-
copal work, contra Partem Donati, is lost. I3ut mentally, but useless spiritually. In a sense,
in 400 he wrote a reply to an old letter of the Holy Spirit operates in schismatical sacra-
Parmenianus, and the seven books de Bapt. ments, so that a convert to the Catholic church
c. Donat. In 401 and 402 he replied to a will not be re-baptized or re-ordained. But it
letter of Petilianus, the Donatist bp. of Cirta, is only in the Catholic church that the Spirit
and wrote his letter to the Catholics, de Unitate operates, as the Spirit of peace and love. " Non
Ecclesiae, an important contribution to the autem habent Dei caritatem qui ecclesiae non
controversy. --In 403 the Catholic bishops in diligunt unitatem ac per hoc rccte intelligitur
;

synod at Carthage agreed to propose a decisive dici non accipi nisi in Catholica Spiritus
conference the Donatists declined, and in 404
; Sanctus " (de Bapt. III. xvi.). Augustine
the Catholic synod determined to ask for a formulates with a clearness not found in any
revival of the imperial laws against the schism. previous writer the distinction between what
From 405-409 the remedy of force was once in later times was called the " gratia gratis
more tried, with very partial success. In the data," which confers status only (the indelible
latter year the Catholic synod petitioned " character " of a " baptizatus " or a priest),
Honorius to order a conference, and as the without any necessary change in the moral
Donatists were now understood to agree, or spiritual character and " gratia gratum
;

Marcellinus, a " tribune," was specially com- faciens," which makes a man not only a mem-
missioned to arrange for the meeting. At the ber of the visible church, but a real member
conference Augustine naturally played the of Christ, not merely a priest, but a good
principal part on the CathoUc side. Marcel- priest. This distinction was hardly perceived
linus closed the proceedings by giving judg- by Cyprian (see Cypr. Epp. 65-67, esp. 66 :

ment in favour of the Catholics, and in 412 " credere quod indigni sint qui ordinan-
. . .

this was followed up by an imperial edict of tur quid aliud est quam contendere quod non
drastic severity. a Deo. . sacerdotes
. . ejus in ecclesia con-
During this period Augustine wrote, in stituantur ? "), who regarded a deposed bishop
addition to twenty-one extant letters on the as a mere layman with but " the empty name
controversy, and four lost works, the following, and shadow " of priesthood. The recognition
'

78 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS


of the validity of Donatist orders and sacra- serious riots at Calama, where the church was
ments was imposed upon Augustine by the repeatedly wrecked by the heathen (Ep. 90,
settled judgment of the Catholic church, 91, 103, 104). The murder of Stilicho (Sept.
especially of the council of Aries, in 314 (Can. 408), and the rumours that the laws against
xiii., cf. viii., rejecting the Cyprianic view). the heathen and the Donatists passed during
But he clearly found it difficult to grasp his life lapsed with his death, caused a further
habitually the distinction between the widespread outburst of heathen violence in
" Spiritus Sanctus," the agent in every Africa (cf. Cod. Th. App. Sirm. XIV. Aug.
;

" valid " sacrament ( = " gratia gratis data "), Ep. 97). A stringent law, passed apparently
and the " Spiritus caritatis," which makes the at the instance of the provincial council at
sacrament a means of grace (" gratum Carthage, of which Augustine was not a
faciens ") to the Catholic recipient. His fre- member, ordered rigorous penalties against
quent denials that " the Holy Spirit " could all the offenders, and against conniving of-
be possessed outside the visible unity of the ficials. Alarmed by the state of the empire,
church relate really to the latter, though the ministers of Honorius appear to have
there are passages which seem to extend to relaxed for a time the rigour of the laws
the former. But on the whole his mind is against paganism and heresy alike, but at the
clear. He distinguishes sharply between urgent request of the African bishops they
Office and Person; between the sacramental were again strictly enforced. On the whole,
act and its benefit to the soul. The former Augustine's tone and attitude towards the
can exist outside the CathoHc church, the pagans is dignified and conciliatory (Epp. 133,
latter only within it. In this respect Augus- etc.), but he shares in the general responsibility
,

tine is an uncompromising assertor of Cyprian's for persecution which must be allotted to thiej
axiom, extra ecclesiam nulla salus. But it churchmen of this degenerate age. 1

must be observed that he subordinates the In 408 and 409 the Goths, under Alaric, had
institutional to the spiritualconct^tion of the laid siege to Rome, and after long and fruitless
church. The Donatists are wrong, because negotiations, the city was taken and sacked
they have broken the bond of caritas which on Aug. 24, 410. The sack of Rome, in its
unites the Catholic society. It is this, and direct effects, was but an incident in the pro-
not the mere fact, necessary though it be, of found abasement of the empire in the miser-
the episcopal succession, that unites Catholics able reign of Honorius. But the downfall of
with the Apostolic churches and through the " Eternal Citv " struck awe into the minds
them by an " inconcussa series " with the of men who failed to appreciate the material
Apostles themselves. (See below, § 16, 6, c
;
and moral exhaustion which the disaster
also Gore, The Church and the Ministry, latter merely symbolized. Augustine's friend Mar-
part of c. iii. Hatch, Organization, v. Reuter, cellinus, the imperial officer who had been in
; ;

pp. 231-283, an able and thorough discussion.) charge of the conference with the Donatists,
§9. Augustine and the Heathen. Philosophy introduced him to a distinguished (" illustris ")
of History.— Augustine tells us [de Civ. Dei, official, Volusianus, who was kept back from
XVIII. liii. 2\ of an oracle current among the the Christian faith by difficulties relating to the
heathen, that the Christian religion would last Old Testament, the Incarnation, and the in-
365 years, and then come to an end. He compatibility of some principles of the Gospel
reckons that this time expired in the year 399. with civil life and the public good (Epp. 135-
As a matter of fact, the year in question was 138, cf. 132). The last-named question natur-
marked by a widespread destruction of pagan ally connected itself with the prevalent
temples throughout the Roman world (Vit. heathen explanation of the fall of Rome, as
Bened. IV. xvi.). In this year apparently the due to the desertion of the old gods and the
counts (iaudentius and Jovius arrived in progress of Christianity. Augustine, unable
Africa to execute an imperial decree for the at the time to discuss this question except
dismantling of the temples. At Carthage the in passing (Ep. 1381.9-1''. cf. 136?), presently
splendid temple of Dea Coelestis, which had began a more thorough consideration of it.
been closed, as it seems, since the law of 391 This is his famous treatise de Civitate Det,
(Cod. Th. XVI. X. 10), and was already over- begun about the end of 412, and not com-
grown with weeds and bushes, was taken pleted until 426. The first two books are
possession of by the Christians. But in 421 it addressed to Marcellinus, who was put to
was razed to the ground (Prosper, de Praed. death, Sept. 13, 413 with a third book, they
;

III. xxxviii.). In some places images were were published before 415. In this year,
hidden to preserve them from destruction. about Lent, he wrote two more (Ep. 1691)
Heathen customs, as we gather from a sermon In 416-417, when he was advising Orosius to
of Augustine [Serm. 62, 4)., were still secretly write his Historia adversus Paganos, Augustine
observed even by some Christians. A council had published ten books, and was at work on
at Carthage in 401 petitioned the emperor to the eleventh. By 420 he had published four-
abolish public feasts and games which were, teen ; the eighteenth was finished " nearly
in spite of a previous imperial prohibition thirty years " after the consulate of Theodoras
{Cod. Th. ib. 17), occasions of heathenish (399). ^•^- hardly earlier than 426. The work
observances. The destruction of a statue of then was continued amid interruptions, and
Hercules at Colonia Suffectana (? Sufetula) the plan widened out from a refutation of the
was the cause of a riot in which sixty Christians heathen calumny (Retr. II. xliii.) to a compre-
lost their lives (Ep. 50). In 407-408 a sweep- hensive explanation of the course of human

ing law, confiscating temples and ordering the affairs a religious philosophy of history.
destruction of altars, images, etc., was issued The problem was one of terrible actuality.
(Cod. Th. ib. 19, cf. Vit. Bened. VI. iv. 2, The ancient world and its civilization were in
V. 3). Its promulgation was attended by most real truth breaking up, and the end of Rome
AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 79

seemed like a giving way of the solid earth is on the civitas terrena (XIX.
dependent for it
beneath men's feet. Lesser men were moved 17, cf. " per jura regum possidentur posses-
to write : Orosius, mentioned above, in 417, siones," in J oh. Tr. VI. 15) practically for all ;

and Salvian, whose lurid indictment of tlie civil purposes the churchman must obey the
sins of the Christian world {de Gubernatione law. But, on the other hand, the civitas terrena
Dei) was penned in 451, four years before the cannot attain its chief good, the pax terrena,
sack of Rome by Gaiseric. But it was unless heavenly motives are brought to bear ;

Augustine who brought tlie ]:)roblem under a for the social bond of caritas, for the elemen-
single master-idea. This idea (which occurs tary requisite of justitia, it is dependent upon
already in de Catech. Rud., written as early the civitas Dei.
as A.D. 400) is that of the two civitates, which, The destiny of the civitas terrena, therefore,
after a refutation of paganism as useless when at the Judgment the two are finally
alike in this world (I.-V.) and in the next separated, the destruction of its social
is
(VI. -X.), are treated of constructively in the bond ; it cease to be a civitas at all.
will
remainder of the work, in respect of their There is, then, if we look at things in their
origin (XI.-XIV.), history (XV.-XVIIL), and eternal aspect, only one civitas, and, applying
destiny (XIX.-XXII.). The work would the ideal to the empirical, the state [qua good,
have gained by condensation, but as it stands, i.e. if Christian) is in the church. Optatus had
with all the marks of discontinuous produc- said {de Schism. III. 3) " Ecclesia in Imperio."
tion, it is a priceless legacy of .A.ugustine's Augustine reverses this relation " Dominus :

most characteristic thoughts (on Ep. 102, jugo suo in gremio ecclesiae toto orbe diffuso
which illustrates the de Civ., and was written omnia terrena regna subjecit." The state is
about 409, see below, § 16 a). By the word in the church, and is bound to carry out the
civitas, commonly rendered " city," Augustine church's aims. The subject of " Church and
means rather a bond of union, or citizenship State " was not the theme of the book, and it
(cf. Philipp. iii. 20 Gk., "duo quaedam genera is not easy to extract from it a strictly consis-
humanae societafalis " XIV. i., the " civitas " tent theory of their relations (see Renter, pp.
takes visible form in the shape of a government, 125-150, 380-392). But these relations were
but its essential character is in the spirit that the question of the future, and in the de
animates it). There are then two, and only Civitate Augustine laid the theoretical founda-
two, civitates, the one heavenly, the other tion for the medieval system (see also below,
earthly. The civitas terrena began with the § 16 ad fin.). The modifying ideas alluded
fall of the angels, was continued by that of to above were not forgotten, but their asser-
man, in the history of the Cainites, of Babel, tion was the work of the opponents of the
and of the great world-empires. The civitas medieval hierocracy and Dante, de Mon-
;

Dei began with Creation its earthly realiza-


; archia, is practically a reversal of the charac-
tion is traceable in the history of the Sethites, teristic doctrine of the de Civitate Dei, after
of Noah, Abraham, Israel, of Christ, and of His that doctrine, tested by being put into prac-
people. The one is rooted in love of God, tice, has been found to lead to unchristian
usque ad contemptum sui ; the other in love of results. One unchristian corollary of Augus-
self, usque ad contemptum Dei. The chief good tine's doctrine was the persecution of heretics
of the one is the p ax coelestis (XIX. 13), that of as a duty of the Christian state. In his earlier
the other, the pax terrena. The great empires days Augustine disapproved of this [contr.
are, in their genesis, the -State is per se iremota Ep. Man. 1-3; Ep. 23, 7; 93, 2, 5, etc.);
justitia), " latrocinium magnum " (IV. 4). but the stress of the Donatist controversy
So that, looked upon in the abstract, since changed his mind in the interest of the
;

there are but two civitates, the state is the doubtful, the weak, the generations to come,
civitas diaboli, the church the civitas Dei. he found a sanction for persecution in St.
But this conclusion is not, thus baldly Luke xiv. 23 Cogite intrare.

:

stated, that of Augustine. To begin with, his § 10. The Pelagian Controversy (412-430). /

conception of the church (see §§ 8, 16, b, c) Augustine, in his first days as a Christian, held /
is not consistent. Does he mean the visible the common view that, while the grace of God/
church, the communio externa, or the com- is necessary to the salvation of man, the first
munio sanctorum, the number of those pre- step, the act of faith, by which man gains]
destined to life, to which not all belong who access to grace, is the act of man, and not
are members of the visible church, and to itself the gift of God (de Praed. III. 7). Thi^
which some belong who are not ? Augustine's view is manifest in the Expos. Propos. in Rom.
language on this point is not always uniform. 13-18, 55, etc., and traceable in de Quaest.
But at the time when he wrote the de Civitate, LXXXIII., qu. 68 and 83). He came to see
the predestinarian idea was growing upon him, that faith itself is the gift of God, and that
and the two civitates tend to coincide with the very first step to Godward must be of
the predestined on the one hand, and, on God's doing, not of our own. This conviction
the other, the rest of mankind. Again, the was not due to reaction against Pelagianism ;
visible church, even apart from its merely on the contrary, Pelagius himself was roused
nominal members, is but part of a larger whole, to contradiction by Augustine's language in
but the empirical shadow of a transcendent his Confessions "Dominedaquod jubes " (see
:

reality, the civitas superna, which includes de Don. Persev. 53). Augustine's change of
angels as well as redeemed humanity (XI. 7). mind was directly and wholly due to his study
And in its earthly visible existence the chiurch of St. Paul (see above, § jb) partly his ;
I

borrows the form of the earthly state (XV. 2). wrestling with the difficulties of the Ep. to
Again, historically, the two civitates are the Romans; but especially his reflection on
mingled together and interpenetrate. More- St. Paul's question (I. Cor. iv. 7), " What
over, the church needs the pax terrena, and hast thou that thou hast not received ?
"

§0 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS


coupled with Rom. ix. i6. The change may and de Spiritu et lAtera) were addressed to
be assigned to the year 396, when, in the first him. In 415 he wrote de Natura et Gratia,
book, he wrote as a bishop [de Divers. Quacst. and probably the tract, in the form of a letter to
ad Simplic. I.), as he says [Re'r. II. i. i), " to Eutropius and Paulus, de Perfectione Justitiae
solve this question, we laboured in the cause Hominis, in refutation of the propositions of
of the freedom of the human will, but the Coelestius in 412 ; in 417 he wrote de Gestis
grace of God won the day " (cf. de Don. Pers. Pelagii, a discussion of the proceedings in
52, plenius sapere coepi). To Simplicianus he Palestine above referred to. Augustine and
says, I. ii. 13 " If it is in man's own power the African bishops, who had been represented
:

not to obey the call, it would be equally correct in Palestine nr,t onlv by Jerome, but by
to say, '
Therefore it is not of God that Orosius, fresh from Hippo, were naturally
sheweth mercy, but of man that runs and dismayed at what had happened there. They
wills,' because the mercy of Him that calls knew that Pelagius and Coelestius were likely
does not suffice, unless the obedience of him to address themselves to Rome, where they
who is called results. . God shews mercy had a strong following (Ep. 177, 2). Accord-
. .

on no man in vain ; but on whom He has ingly councils at Carthage and at Milevis, at
mercy, him He calls in such sort as He knows the latter of which Augustine was present,
to be fitted for him [congruere], so that He does wrote to urge Innocentius to support them
not reject him that calleth." Here we have against the " alleged " decision of the Pales-
the essential of the " Augustinian " doctrine tinian councils, cither bv reclaiming the heretics
of grace, the distinction of the vocatio congrua or by adding the authority of his see to their
and vocatio non congrua (" Illi enim electi qui condemnation. A letter carefully explaining
congruenter vocati"), formulated more than the doctrinal issue was also sent by Aurelius
fifteen years before the Pelagian controversy of Carthage, Augustine, Alypius, Possidius,
began (see also Loots, pp. 279-280, who shews and Evodius (see above, §§ 6, 7). Augustine
in detail that Augustine's whole later position certainly drew up the latter two (Epp. 176,'
is virtually contained in de Div. Quaest. ad Sim- 177), and his inspiration is also manifest in
plician.). For the details of this controversy, the Carthaginian letter. Innocent, unable to
see the church histories D. C. B. (4-vol. conceal his satisfaction at so important an
;

ed.), S.V.; Bright, Introd. to Anti-Pelagian appeal to his authority (he assumes that the
Treatises, and other authorities. (A lucid African bishops, though they do not refer to
.summary in Gibson, XXXIX. Articles, art. them, are not unacquainted with the " in-
ix.) It will suffice here to mention the main siituta patrum," which direct that nothing
outlines. shall be done in any province of the church
(a) 410-417. Pelagius, offended at a pas- without reference to the Apostolic See Epp. ;

sage in Augustine's Confessions (see above), 181', 182- ; see below, § 12, c), responded
began at Rome (405-409^ to express his dis- cordially with a prompt condemnation of
approval of such an insistence upon Di\'ine Pelagianism, root and branch. Augustine was
grace as should undermine human responsi- triumphant. 1 he imfort una tc proceedings of
bility. Before the siege of Rome (supra, § 9) Diospolis were more than neutralized. Preach-
he left with his friend Coelestius for Africa ing on Sunday, Sept. 23, 417, he says
;
:
" Jam
there Pelagius left Coelestius, and went to enim de hac causa duo concilia missa sunt ad
Palestine. Coelestius sought ordination at sedem Apost^licam, inde etiam rescripta
Carthage, and thus attracted additional atten- venerunt. Causa finita est ; utinam ali-
tion to his doctrines. A council of bishops quando finiatur errcT " (Serm. i^i)- But the
in 412 condemned him he went away to author of the rescripta was already dead six
;

Ephesus, and there he was ordained. Subse- months before, and there was need of another
quently he went to Constantinople and (417) council. The cause was not " finished " yet.
to Rome. Meanwhile, opposed by Jerome in (b) Zosimus. —
Julian (418-430). Zosimus,
Palestine, Pelagius was found not guilty of the new bp. of Rome (see D. C. B. 4-vol.
heresy by John, bp. of Jerusalem, and by ed. S.V.), was favourably impressed with the
councils at Jerusalem and Diospolis (415). confessions of faith submitted by Pelagius
He dispatched to Rome (417) a confession and Coelestius, as well as by their deference
of faith to be submitted to Innocentius it
: to his authority. He pronounced them ortho-
arrived after that bishop's death. Coelestius dox, and twice wrote indignantly to Aurelius
shortly afterwards (still in 417) arrived at and the Africans for their hasty condemnation
Rome, and submitted his confession of faith of the accused in their absence. He adds that
to the new bp. Zosimus. Augustine appears he has admonished Coelestius and others to
to have been partly aware of the opinions of abstain from curious and unedifying questions.
Pelagius before his arrival in Africa (see de But the original accusers of Pelagius were
Gest. Pel. 46 also probably through Paulinus unmoved.
; After some correspondence with
of Nola, see deGrat. Christi, 38), but he appears Zosimus they held a plenary council at Car-
to have attached little importance to them at thage (May 418), in which they passed nine
the time ;and the arrival of Pelagius found dogmatic canons condemning the characteristic
him in the very thick of other questions (see Pelagian theses. Meanwhile, Aurelius had
above, §§ 8, 9). He alludes to the Pelagian been taking more practical steps. A rescript
doctrines (without any mention of names) in in the emperor's name (Honorius was here, as
preaching [Serm. 170, 174, 175), but took no in the Donatist question, the passive instru-
part in the proceedings at Carthage in 412. ment of his advisers, probably count Valerius,

But his friend Marcellinus (supra, § 9) pressed whose ear Aurelius gained " secuta est de-
him for his opinion upon the questions there mentia nostra judicium sanctitatis tuae,"
discussed, and his first anti- Pelagian writings Honorius writes in 419) ordered the banish-
(a.d. 412, de Pecc. Meritis et Remiss, lib. III., ment of Pelagius, Coelestius, and all their

AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS il

adherents. Zosimus at once came round to throughout the Latin church, gained them
the side of the Africans. In a circular letter widespread acceptance. But there were,
(tractoria) he condemned Coelestius and especially in monastic circles, grave misgivings
Pelagianism alike, and required all the bishops as to their soundness. The three points to
of his jurisdiction to signify their adhesion. which most serious objection was felt were
Thus ended the official support of Pelagius in the doctrines of the total depravity of fallen
the West. (On Augustine's view of Zosimus, man, of irresistible grace, and of absolute
see Reuter, pp. 312-322, and below, § 12 d. predestination, not on the ground of foreseen
On the whole question, see Garnier in Marti merit. The Christian, as taught by Augustine,
Mercat. opp. I. p. 19.) Zosimus appears to received instruction, baptism, the subsequent
have imperfectly grasped the points at issue, beneficia gratiae which went to build up the
and in this case, as in that of Apiarius in the Christian life and train the soul for its eternal
same year (infra, § 12, c), and in that of the home. But the success or failure, the per-
metropolitan rights of Aries, he appears to manent value of the whole process, depended
have been in a greater hurry to assert the upon the crowning beneficium gratiae, the
claims of his see than to ascertain the merits Donum Perseverantiae, which even at the very
of the question in debate. moment of death decides whether the soul
The most able advocate of Pelagianism now departs in Christ or falls from Him. This
appears in the person of Julian, bp. of Ecla- awful gift, which alone decides between the
num in Southern Italy. He refused to sign saved and the lost, may be withheld from
the tractoria, accused Zosimus of changing his many who have lived as good and sincere
front un der imperial pressure ( " j ussionis t errore Christians : it may be granted to those whose
perculsos," c. Duas Epp. Pelag. ii. 3), and ap- lives have been far from Christ. Its giving
pealed to a general council. This appeal came or withholding depends upon the Divine pre-
to nothing {ib. iv. 34). Julian was deposed destination only ; God's foreknowledge of
by Zosimus, banished by the Government, and those who will " persevere " is but His own
took refuge in the East. He is said to have foreknowledge of what He Himself will give
found a friend in Theodore of Mopsuestia. or withhold. Only the foreknown in this
At any rate, in 431 the Westerns secured the sense are called with vocatio congrua. If these
condemnation of Pelagianism (without speci- doctrines were true, if free will was by itself
fication of its tenets) along with Nestorianism entirely powerless to accept the Divine call
at the council of Ephesus, on the ground of or to reject the vocatio congrua, if man's sal-
the kindred nature of the two heresies. This vation at bottom depended simply and solely
was not without substantial reason. The two upon the Divine predestination, what appeal
heresies rest upon the same fundamental idea was possible to the conscience of the wicked
of the benefit which the redemptive work of {correptio) ? Was not preaching deprived of
Christ brings to man — viz. moral improvement its raison d'etre ?
by perfect teaching and example, rather than This was the view of John Cassian, the
atonement for an inherently guilty race (" ut father of Western monachism, and of Vincent
vel sero redamaremus eum," Julian in Op. and other monks of Lerins on the southern
Imperf. I. xciv.). Augustine continued to write coast of Gaul. These " semi- Pelagians," who
against Pelagianism. In 418 he wrote two may with equal justice be called " semi-
books, de Gratia Christi et de Peccato Originali ;
Augustinians," were not a sect outside the
in the two following years the two books de church, but a party of dissentient Catholics.
Nuptiis et Concupiscentia, and four de Anitna Excepting the above-mentioned points and
eiusque Origine. These works bore on the certain obvious corollaries, such as the doctrine
transmission of original sin, and the difficult of "particular" redemption, they accepted
collateral question of the origin of the soul, the entire Augustinian position. The contro-
whether by direct creation or ex traduce. versy, which is in reality insoluble, lasted long
Tertullian had roundly maintained tradux after Augustine's death. Temporarily laid to
animae, tradux peccati. Pelagius denied both. rest at Orange (where a modified Augustinian-
Augustine cannot decide the question ; he ism was adopted by a small council in 529),
half leans to creation, but his theory appears it burst out again in the Gottschalk troubles
to require the other alternative (see below, in the 9th cent., it ranged the Scotists against
§ 15). Julian attacked the de Nuptiis hotly. the Thomists in the 13th, the Arminians
Augustine's four books, contra Duas Epp. Pela- against the Calvinists, the Jesuits against the
gianorum (420) are in reply to Julian on this Jansenists in the 17th. Intellectually it is
as well as on the historical questions ; they a case of an " antinomy," in which from
were followed by six books contra Julianum obvious truths we are led by irresistible logic
(about 421). Julian replied with vigour, and to incompatible conclusions. Morally, our
Augustine at the time of his death had only crux is to insist on human responsibility while
finished six books of a rejoinder which he in- excluding human merit. The religious instinct
tended to be complete {Opus Imperfectum). of deep and genuine self-accusation is not easy
(c) The semi- Pelagians (from about 426). to combine with the unreserved acknowledg-
In the combat with Pelagianism, Augustine ment that we have no power of ourselves to
cannot be said to have changed his views help ourselves. We must, with Cassian, ap-
{supra, ^ 10, sub init.); but he stated, with peal to free will from the pulpit, but Augustine
increasing clearness and sharper consistency, is with us in the secret sanctuary of prayer.
opinions which he had gathered from his study Augustine's attention was drawn to these
of St. Paul long before the combat began. difficulties by Hilary and Prosper of Aquitaine,
These opinions were new to most churchmen, the latter the most active, and indeed bitter,
although reaction from the paradoxes of opponent of the Ingrati, as he calls Cassian
Pelagius, and Augustine's immense authority and his friends. The works de Gratia et Libera
6
82 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS
Arbitrio and de Correptione et Gratia (426-427) was and that if Pelagius were right,
superficial,
relate to the moral issues of the question, while the church and the positive religion of Christ
the de Praedest. Sanctorum and de Dono Per- had only a relative value. Moreover, it was
severantiae (428, 9) are in direct controversy impossible for the Pelagians to argue out their
with the " brethren " of Southern Gaul. case without exposing themselves to an array
(d) The Doctrinal Issues. — Pelagianism split of damaging quotations from recognized
Fathers of the church (c. Julian. I. II.). And
upon the rock of infant baptism. Had this
practice not become general by the time when it is impossible to deny that Augustine, in the
Pelagius arose, Augustine would have had to points at issue with the semi- Pelagians, was
combat him by arguments which churchmen following out the strict logical consequences
at large would have found difficulty in follow- of the elementary truths which Pelagius and
ing. —
As it was, to the question, " Why " if Julian denied. He admits frankly, in this as
Adam's sin directly affected himself only, and in some other questions, that he had changed
extended to his descendants non propagine his mind, plenius sapere coepi, but he again
sed exemplo — " why, then, are infants bap- and again protests that he is merely defending
tized ? " Pelagius had no satisfactory reply. the doctrine which nunquani Ecclesia Christi
His answer, that the unbaptized infant is non habuit (i.e. predestination, de Don. Persev.
excluded, not from eternal life, but only from xiv. 36, etc.).
the kingdom of heaven, was a relic of Millen- This is certainly sincere, but also certainly
iarism with which the Eastern church had incorrect, so far as concerns the formal asser-
even less sympathy than the West. Pelagius tion of absolute predestination, irresistible
allowed that man can do no good thing without grace, and total depravity. And it must
the grace of God. But his conception of grace further be noted that the doctrine of pre-
was loose and shallow ;
practically it went destination is, logically at least, as subversive
back to the general providence of God, which of the worth of church and sacraments as is
supplies our temporal and spiritual wants the Pelagian doctrine of human nature (see
alike. His assertion that a sinless life was below, § 16, c). Probably neither Augustine
not only possible, but was actually lived by nor the Pelagians were conscious of the full

many of the holy men of the Bible, was in consequences of their position -the naturalism
direct conflict with the promptings of a deep of the one and the transcendentalism of the
religious sense (de Nat. et Grat. xxxvi. 42). other were alike tempered by common church
His conception of the beneficium Christi {supra, teaching. But the ecclesiastical instinct has
b, c) was shallow and unsatisfying. Pelagius generally been (in spite of the rapier-thrusts
was an ardent churchman, a strict ascetic, of a Pascal) to seek some illogical via media
and a believer in sacramental grace. The between the Augustinian and the semi- Pela-
earlier church had reflected but little on the gian (itself an illogical) position. Instinct in
questions raised by him. " Unde factum est such a matter is perhaps a safer guide than
ut de gratia Dei quid sentirent breviter ac logic. But it is important to bear in mind
transeuntes attingerent." Free will equipped that in rejecting Pelagianism the whole
with sacraments, the Christian religion a church, Augustinian and semi- Pelagian alike,
" New Law," predestination founded upon were as one. [Pelagianism.]
prescience, fairly represent the implicit pre- § II. Augustine and Greek Christendom.

Augustinian view of the Christian life and its The last sentence may seem questionable so
relation to the mystery of Divine election. far as the Greek-speaking churches were con-
Augustine pressed Pelagius with the implica- cerned. But we must remember that Coeles-
tions of sacramental grace. If free will is as tius found no welcome at Constantinople, that
complete as Pelagius believed, sacraments Augustine not only wrote (Ep. 179) to bp.
are in reality superfluous as means of grace. John of Jerusalem to warn him of Pelagius's
If sacramental grace is as real as Pelagius errors, but also quotes John's arguments as
admitted it to be, then man depends for his decisive against Pelagianism (Ep. i863'', de
salvation not upon his own free will, but upon Gest. Pel. 37 seq., " sanctus Johannes "), and
the gift of God» Augustine, assuming the that Pelagianism was formally condemned at
church doctrine of sacramental grace, gave it the council of Ephesus. But Augustine is
a deeper meaning and a wider context, and somewhat biased in his review of the proceed-
brought it into close relation with the almost ings in Palestine by the assumption, which it
forgotten Pauline categories of sin, faith, justi- never occurred to him to question, of the
fication, and the gratia Christi (see Renter, absolute doctrinal homogeneity of the East and
pp. 40-45). It was formerly thought (by Baur West. Accordingly he explains the acquittal
and others) that Augustine's antagonism to of Pelagius by the difficulty of language,
Pelagius was dictated by his conception of and by the evasive answers of Pelagius, with-
the church and the sacraments, especially of out allowing for the strangeness to Greek
baptism. This we have seen to be incorrect. theology of the very categories of the question
As a matter of fact, Pelagius was, as the pro- at issue. The catholicity of the church, he
ceedings at Diospolis shew, hard to convict of argues against the Donatists, is to be tested
heresy on merely ecclesiastical grounds. The by communion, not only with the apostolic
theological principles which Augustine brought see of Rome, but with the other apostolic
to the analysis of ecclesiastical practice, and churches, and with Jerusalem, the common
to the refutation of Pelagianism, he had source of all (ad Don. Post Collat. xxix. 50 ;

learned from St. Paul at first hand. Pelagius de Unit. X. xi. Ep. 52-'').
; In Augustine's
appealed to the naive language of churchmen time the first symptoms of the coming rift
before him, who as Augustine says, " Pela- between the Greek and Latin churches had
gianis nondum litigantibus securius loque- indeed appeared, but few realized their mean-
bantur." Augustine shewed that the accord ing. Augustine certainly did not. He meets
; 1

AuaUSTlNUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 83


the arguments of Julian, who claimed the Where was its centre ? What was the final stan-
Greek Fathers for his side, by an appeal to dard of appeal ? To these questions it is hard
the Greek text of Chrysostom. On the other to obtain from Augustine a definite answer.
hand, he does not, even in the de Trinitate Augustine was not an ecclesiastical statesman.
(written 400-416 :" juvenis inchoavi senex His interest was above all in personal religion.l
edidi "), spontaneously build much upon and therefore, in a secondary degree, in doctrine
Greek theology. The Nicene Creed, which he and discipline. Although he takes for granteal
accepted of course ex animo, is but seldom re- the Cyprianic view of the episcopal office, he
ferred to in that work of the " Constantino-
; does not insist upon it with special emphasis ;

politan " Creed he shews no knowledge. The he emphasises, on the other hand, in a marked
de Trinitate is Western in the texture of its manner, the universal priesthood of Christians.
thought, true to the original sense of the His insistence on the indelible character of the
bfioovuLov, a formula imposed on the Eastern priestly ordination is not in the interest of
church at Nicaea by Western influences (see " sacerdotalism," but as against the spiritual
the present writer's Prolegomena to Athanasius value of valid but schismatical orders (supra,
in Nic. Lib. IV. p. xxxii., etc.) in the interest § 8, c). He accepts the authority of Nicaea
of the Divine Unity. Augustine paves the (the only strictly general council known to
way, by his insistence on the doctrine of the him), but as to the authority of other councils
One Personal God, for the scholastic doctrine his language is ambiguous. He disallows
of the Una Res, the specifically Western pro- Julian's appeal to a general council on the
duct of Trinitarian theology. The same holds ground that " the cause is finished" by " a
good of Christology. At Chalcedon, Leo's competent judgment of bishops " (c. Jul. III.
tome, which shews the profound influence of 5). But in another passage [supra, § 10, a,
Augustine, carried the day in the teeth of the fin.) he is understood to say, " the cause is
dominant tone of Greek Christology and it
;
finished " by two African councils, plus " re-
is interesting to find Theodoret, who of all scripts from the apostolic see." What is his
Greek churchmen had most reason to welcome real view of the supreme organ of church
the result, quoting Ambrose and Augustine as authority ?
authorities in his dogmatic Dialogues —
an ex- (a) The Apostles
in their lifetime were the
ception to the general indifference of the East leaders, " principes " (Ps. Ixvii.^" Vulg. ; see
to Latin theologians. Another exception, Enarr. in loc), and " patres " (Ps. xliv.i?
due in part to independent controversial and Enarr.) now that they are gone, we
;

reasons, is the protest of Leontius and the have their filii in their place, the bishops,
" Scythic monks," under Justinian, against who are principes super omnem terram. The
the " semi-Pelagianism " of Faustus of Reii Apostles still live on in the bishops, who are
Leontius shews some knowledge, direct or accordingly the vehicle of the supreme author-
second-hand, of Augustine (Loofs's Leontius, ity of the church. The Donatist bishops
pp. 231 ff.). Augustine's influence, then, cannot claim this status [Ep. 533, etc.), because
on Greek Christianity has been very slight. they are out of communion with the apostolic
But although he has powerfully contributed churches. Hence (b) the unity and continuity
to the divergence in thought and feeling of of the episcopate are essential to its Apostolic
Latin Christianity from Greek, he is personally rank. In this unity even mali praepositi are
unconscious of any such tendency. Of his authoritative, " nonenim sua sunt quae dicimt,
own knowledge of Greek he speaks slightingly ;
sed Dei, qui in cathedra unitatis doctrinam
Gibbon (c. xxiii.28) and others take him posuit veritatis " (Ep. los'^). This is the old
strictly at his word, but Renter (pp. 179, etc.) Cyprianic doctrine, which Augustine, like
shews that we must rate it somewhat more Cyprian, finds in the symbolic foundation of
highly than Augustine himself does. the Church upon Peter, who represents the

V § 12. Augustine and the Constitution of the


Church. —
The Roman See. Augustine's view
of the relation of the church to the civil power
whole body. All bishops are equal
no Episcopus episcoporum (de Bapt. III. 5,
there is ;

VI. 9, quoting Cyprian). But as Peter repre-


(see above, § 9) prepared the way for the sented his coequal colleagues, the Apostles,
medieval system. But in Augustine's hands so his successors in the Roman see represent
the theory lacked elements indispensable for their co-equal colleagues the bishops (cf. ad
its practical application. Not only did his Classic, in Ep. 250, ad fin. " .n concilio
. . .

conception of the church hover between the nostro agere cupio, et si opus fuerit 'ad Sedem
transcendental spiritual ideal and the empir- Apost. scribere, ut quid sequi debeamus
. . .

ical, tangible organization, but his conception communi omnium aucioTitate firmetur").
. . .

of the organization of the visible church itself All bishops alike hold the cathedra unitatis,
lacked that practical precision without which all alike trace their succession to one or other
the church could assert no effective claim to of the Apostles. This is more easily traceable
control the secular arm. To the authority of in some cases (i.e. the churches quibus Apos-
the church he surrendered himself with pas- toli scripserunt) than in others, but most
sionate affection. " I should not believe in obvious in the Roman see, whose bishops,
the Gospel," he wrote in the early davs of from the sedes (i.e. episcopate, c. Ep. Fund.
his episcopate, " did not the authoritv of the "5 cf. " primae sedis episcopus," supra, § 8,
;

Catholic church compel me " (c. Ep. Fund. 6, init.) of Peter himself, have followed on«
in A.D. 397). But this was the immanent another in a succession known to all (Psalm
authority which the church by her Ufe, creed, c. Donat. sub fin., Ep. 533). The successio
land worship exercised upon his soul, rather sacerdotum at Rome and the successiones
Ithan her official decisions. These, again, he episcoporum generally (de Util. Cred. xvii.
accepted with all his heart. But what was the 35) are, to Augustine, co-ordinate and convert-
ialtimate organ of the church's authority ? ible ideas. Even with regard to the authority
84 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS
of councils, there is no real finality. Earlier canon was genuine. In reply, Zosimus sent
councils are subject to correction by later {de three legates — Faustinus, bp. of Potentia in
Bapt. II. iii. 4). This is the position of Julius Picenum, and the presbyters Philip and
I. (see below, § 16, and the present writer's Asellus— to Carthage, with written and oral
Roman Claims to Supremacy, iii. fin.). instructions. The written instructions [com-
» The Episcopate and the Roman See. The
(c) — monitorium) comprised four points (Bruns
1/ Roman see was Apostolica sedes, not ex- Canones, I. 197) : (i) the right of the Roman
clusively Faust, xi. X.; de Doct. Christ. II.
(c. See to receive appeals from bishops (see Can.
viii. 12), but conspicuously. This implied a Sard. Lat. 3, 4) (2) bishops not to go over
;
"
pre-eminence of rank, at any rate over sees not the sea to court (i.e. from Africa) " importune
(3) presbyters and deacons excom-
" Apostolic" {Ep. 43*, "Rom. ecclesiae, in qua (ib. S);

semper Apostolicae Cathedrae viguit principa- municated by their bishop to have an appeal
tus" c. Jul. I. iv. 13, prior loco c. Duas Epp.
; ; to finitimi episcopi (ib. 17) ; (4) Urbanus to
Pel. I. i. 2 [to pope Bonifatius], " quamvis be excommunicated, " or even cited to Rome."
ipse in ea [sc. communi specula pastorali] Of these points, (2) betrays the soreness of
praeemineas celsiore fastigio," and ib. i, " qui Zosimus at the way in which Aurelius had
non alta sapis quamvis altius praesideas "). forced his hand (supra, § 10, b) (4) hangs ;

But in none of the passages where this is fully upon (i) (3) is necessary in order to bring
;

recognized is any definite authority assigned to the case of Apiarius, who was not a bishop,
the " apostolic see." Peter was first of the somehow under the scope of the pretended
Apostles, superior to any bishop (even to Nicene canon relating to (r) the case of ;

Cyprian, de Bapt. III. i.-2) but he is simply Apiarius would become a factor in that of
;

the representative of the Apostles, nor does Urbanus, which Zosimus would, by stretching
Augustine ascribe to him aiithority over the the right of receiving appeals to a right of
others (see Serm. 46^'^), and the same applies evocalio, claim to deal with under (i). A re-,
to his estimate of Peter's successors. ference to the Sardican canons will shew how
' Augustine's own instinct towards Rome is flimsy a foundation they offer for the claims
^ne of unbounded respect. Towards the end founded upon them. But what is important
pf his life (about 423) he had to remove, for to observe is that Zosimus, like Innocentius
obvious unfitness, Antonius, the bishop of the (supra, § 10, a), bases his right to interfere
newly-created see of Fussala, a daughter- simply upon canonical authority. On neither
church of Hippo (Ep. 209). Antonius, like side is there any notion of jurisdiction inherent
Apiarius (of whom presently), and possibly in the Roman see prior to ecclesiastical legis-
encouraged, like others (ib.^), by his example, lation. If the alleged canon was genuinely
decided to try his fortune at Rome. He Nicene, it established the jurisdiction if not, ;

obtained from the senior bp. of Numidia a the jurisdiction fell to the ground.
favourable verdict and an introduction to When Faustinus and his colleagues reached
Bonifatius, who was, prima facie, inclined to Africa, Zosimus had been succeeded by Boni-
take up his cause, and wrote to that effect. fatius. They were received by the plenary
But Bonifatius died (422), and his successor council of the African provinces at Carthage
Coelestinus had to deal with the case. (419). Alypius and Augustine were there,
Rumours reached Fussala that he would insist and joined in the proceedings (Bruns, pp.
on the restoration of Antonius, and that the 155 ff.). The council cut short the verbal
Government would support him by military instructions of Faustinus (ib. p. 197), and in-
force. Augustine, in fear lest the people of sisted upon hearing the commonitorium. When
Fussala should go back en masse to the it was read, and the canon on episcopal ap-
Donatists, writes to Coelestinus to entreat his peals was quoted, Alypius undertook the in-
support. He entreats him by the memory of vidious duty of pointing out that the Latin
St. Peter, " who warned the praepositi of and the Greek copies of the Nicene canons
Christian peoples not to domineer over their accessible at Carthage contained no such
brethren " (ib. 9). The case is an interesting canon. He suggested that both sides should
one, but it loses some of its importance in view obtain authentic copies from the bps. of
of the fact that the African church was then Constantinople, Alexandria, and Antioch.
still bound by voluntary promise, pending in- Meanwhile, the copies above referred to should
quiry into the genuineness of an alleged Nicene be placed on the minutes but the alleged ;

canon to that effect, to allow appeals to Rome canon should be observed donee integra exem-
by bishops. The promise arose out of the plaria veniant. Augustine proposed a like
famous case of Apiarius. This presbyter was action with regard to (3) the proposals were
;

deposed by Augustine's friend and pupil unanimously carried, and accepted, though
Urbanus, bp. of Sicca, and appealed to Zosi- with no good grace, by Faustinus. The
mus, bp. of Rome. Zosimus had hastily taken council wrote to Bonifatius intimating their
his side and ordered his restoration. Urbanus action (Bruns, pp. 196 f.), stating how they had
refused, both on the merits of the case, which dealt with Apiarius, and complaining with
he knew and Zosimus did not, and also on the dignity and firmness of the insolence of
ground that Zosimus had no right to interfere. Faustinus, which, they add, they believe and
This was the real question at issue. Zosimus hope they will not, under the new Roman
first wrote (418), basing his right to interfere bishop, be called upon to suffer. The signa-
on the canons of Nicaea. As the African tures include those of Augustine and Alypius.
bishops found no such provision in their copy Six years later (425) an African council
of the canons, they postponed the matter for (Bruns, p. 200) receive Faustinus once again.
further verification of the true text, promising Coelestinus, now bp. of Rome, writes that
meanwhile (paulisper) to act (without pre- " he has been rejoiced by the coming of Api-
judice) on the assumption that the alleged arius," and with Faustinus, Apiarius once more
AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 85

reappears at Carthage. But not only did the letter to Paulinus of Nola (Ep. 186). He
culprit finally and ignominiously break down treats it not as a doctrinal decision, but as a
before the council the replies from the
: splendid confirmation of a doctrine already
-Eastern churches had come in, with authentic certain (see Reuter, p. 311). As a result, the
copies of the Nicene canons and the canons
;
Pelagians have definitely lost their case :

put forward by Zosimus and his successors " causa finita est." Augustine uses this phrase
were not there. [It must be noted that, al- twice : once (§ 10, a, fin.) with reference to the
though Gratus of Carthage was possibly pre- African councils and the reply of Innocentius ;

sent at Sardica in 343 (see Nicene Lib. vol. 4, once (see beginning of this section) in 421 of
Athanasius, p. 147), the African church knew the condemnation of Pelagianism by the
nothing of the canons passed there. They judicium episcoporum. With the latter pas-
"
only knew Sardica by repute as an " Arian sage we must compare Ep. 19022 (written in
synod, and friendly to the Donatists (Ep. 418), where the " adjutorium Salvatoris qui
44'' ; c. Crescon. IV. xliv. 52). The canons suam tuetur ecclesiam " is connected with the
of Sardica had not passed into the generally " conciliorum episcoporum vigilantia," not
accepted rules of the church.] The council with the action of popes Innocentius and
press the ignominious exposure, which makes Zosimus. At a much later date (426), review-
a clean sweep of papal jurisdiction in Africa, ing the controversy as a whole, he speaks of
with a firm but respectful hand. They are the whole cause as having been dealt with
content to ask Coelestinus to observe the conciliis episcopalibus the letters of the
;

canons, not to receive appellants, not to send Roman bishops are not dignified with separate
legates tanquam a latere, and, above all, not mention (Ep. 2145). On the whole, these utter-
to inflict Faustinus upon them any more. The ances are homogeneous. The prominence, if
Roman chancery did not learn from this pain- any, assigned to the rescripta over the concilia
ful experience not to tamper with the canons in Serm. 131, 10 (supra, § 10, a, fin.) is relative
(see the present writer's Roman Claims to to a passing phase of the question. Its sense
Supremacy, iv., S.P.C.K. 1896), but the in- is, moreover, wholly altered in the utterance in-
cident is decisive as to the mind of the African vented for Augustine by some Roman Catholic
church. Though Renter, in his scrupulous apologists Roma locuta est, et causa finita est.
:

desire to be fair, minimizes the part taken by It occurred to no one in those days to put
Augustine in the case (pp. 306 seq.), there is any bishop, even of an apostolic see, above
nothing to shew that in this matter he was in a council, although there are signs at Rome
other than perfect accord with Aurelius and of a tendency to work the Sardican canons in
the African bishops. On the contrary, he that direction. Augustine experienced, as
says, late in his life, of clergy who merely we have seen, a signal, and to him especially
evade his own rigorous diocesan rule " in-: galling, papal blunder in the action of Zosimus
terpellet contra me mille concilia, naviget with reference to the Pelagians. The brunt
contra me quo voluerit, adjuvabit me Deus ut of the correspondence with Zosimus at this
ubi ego episcopus sum, ille clericus esse non painful crisis apparently fell upon Aurelius
possit." This tone implies that the Apiarius and the bishops of his province (Afri. c. Duas
case is now matter of history (Serm. 156I). Epp. Pel. II. iii. 5), rather than upon Numidia,
But Reuter is probably right in his view that Augustine's own province. Augustine, as
Augustine's interest in constitutional ques- compared with the African bishops, distinctly
tions was small compared to his concern for minimizes the indictment. Zosimus had pro-
doctrine. nounced the libellus of Coelestius catholic.
)(d) The Roman See and the Final Doctrinal Augustine explains this favourably, as refer-
Authority. —
Augustine shews no jealousy of ring not to his doctrine, but to his profession of
the power and prestige of the Roman see. On submission to correction " voluntas emen- ;
J
; the contrary, he regarded it as, in a special dationis, non falsitas dogmatis approbata est."
r degree, the depository of apostolic tradition. The action of Zosimus was well meant, even
What degree of dogmatic authority did this if too lenient (lenius actum est. See also de
imply ? The principal data for answering Pecc. Orig. vi. 7, vii. 8). The letter of the
this question are connected with the Pelagian Afri, which was stern and menacing in tone
controversy (supra, § 10, a, b). Innocentius (" Constituimus per venerabilem
. . . . . .

certainly reads into the letters of the Africans Innocentium prolatam manere sententiam,"
. . .

(Aug. Epp. 175-177, see 181-183) a hyper- Prosp. adv. Coll. v. 15) put an end to all hopes
Sardican attitude towards his chair of which of compromise. Zosimus, however (c. Duas
they were innocent. But it is clear that the Epp., U.S.), " never by a word, in the whole
Africans attach the greatest importance to his course of the proceedings," denied original
approbation of their decision, only they do sin. His faith was consistent throughout.
not treat the doctrinal issue as at all doubtful Coelestius deceived him for a time, but tllam
or subject to papal decision on the contrarv, sedem usque ad finem fallere non potuit (de
;

in the private letter (Ep. 1778. 6-b) which Pecc. Orig. xxi. 24). " The Roman church,
Augustine sends to ensure that Innocentius where he was so well known, he could not
shall not lack full information on the merits of deceive permanently " (ib. viii. 9). But there
the case, he takes for granted that the eccle- had been danger. " Supposing which God —
siastica et apostolica Veritas is already certain. forbid !

the Roman church had gone back
He assumes (with probable historical correct- upon the sentence of Innocentius and ap-
ness) that the African church owes its original proved the dogmata condemned by him, then
I
tradition to Rome (ib.y-i) but both have their it would be necessary rather [potius] to brand
;

( source (" ex eodem capite") in the Apostolic the Roman clergy with the note of praevari- '

.tradition itself (see Reuter, pp. 307-311). catio.' " Even in contemplating the repellent
Augustine refers to Innocentius's reply in a possibility that the action of Rome had been
86 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS
worse than he will allow, Augustine evidently brought. He spent his whole time in prayer,
shrinks from pushing the conclusion to its and died in the presence of his praying friends,
full consequences to the extent of censuring in a green old age, with hearing, sight, and all
Zosimus by name. "Rather" he would his bodily faculties unimpaired. The Sacrifice
brand " the Roman clergy " in confuso. But was offered and he was buried. He left no
this reserve must not be misconstrued as an will, nor any personal property. His books
anticipation of later Roman infallibilism ; not he had given to the church to be kept for ever ;

even St. Peter was strictly infallible in August- fortunately, they survived when Hippo was
ine's eyes (refs. in Reuter, pp. 326 ff.), much destroA'ed by the Vandals ; his writings, says
less his successors' none of whom " Pet ri aposto-
, Possidius, " will for ever keep his character
latui conferendus est " [de Bapt. VI. ii. 3). fresh in the minds of his readers, yet not even
(e) Conclusion. —Augustine has no consistent they will supply, to those who knew him, the
theory of the ultimate organ of church place of his voice and his presence. For he
authority, whether legislative, disciplinary, or was one who fulfilled the word of St. James :

dogmatic. This authority resides in the Epis- '


So speak ye, and so do.' " He had lived
copate, its content is the catholica Veritas, and 76 years, and nearly 40 in the ranks of the
in practical matters the consuetudo or tradilio. clergy. Till his last illness he had preached
These are to be interpreted by the bishops regularly. His arbitration was greatly in
acting in concert —
especially in councils.
" regional " council is subordinate to the
The request, on the part both of churchmen and
non-churchmen. He gladly aided all, taking
" plenary," the plenary council of the province opportunity when he could to speak to them
to that of the whole church (de Bapt. V. for the good of their souls. For criminals, he
xvii., VII., liii. Ep. 43, 9
; ; de Bapt. II. would intercede with discrimination and tact,
iii. 4) while of the latter, the earlier are
; and rarely without success. He attended
subject to amendment by later councils. councils whenever he could, and in these, as-
Even, then, with regard to the authority of in the ordination of bishops and clergy, he
councils there is no real finality Augustine
; was conspicuously conscientious. In dress and
sees, like Julius of Rome in 340 (see the furniture he followed a just mean between
writer's Roman Claims to Supremacy, iii. ad luxury and shabbiness ; his table was spare,
fin.), no remedy but the revision of earlier his diet mainly vegetarian, though meat was
councils by later. Clearly we have here no there for visitors or for inftrmiores. Wine he
complete system of thought. Augustine falls always drank. His spoons were silver, but
back on the sensus catholicus, a real and valu- his other vessels wood, earthenware, or marble.
able criterion, but not easy to bring within a His hospitality never failed his meals were
:

logical definition. The church is infallible, made enjoyable, not by feasting and carousing,
but he cannot point to an absolutely infallible but by reading or conversation. Ill-natured
organ of her authority. By his very vague- gossip he sternly repressed. He had this
ness on this point, Augustine practically paved motto conspicuously displayed :

the way for the future centralization of in-


Quisquis amat dictis absentem rodere vitam,
fallible authority in the papacy (on the whole
ilanc mensam indignam noverit esse sibi.
question, see Reuter, pp. 329-355 ; and below,
§ i6, b). He sharply rebuked even bishops for
§ 13. Death and Character. — Augustine died breaches of this excellent rule. He freely
on Aug 28,430. Clouds were thickening over spent upon the poor both the income of his
his country and church. The Vandals, invited see and the alms of the faithful. To ill-
by the error, too late discovered, of August- natured grumblings about the wealth of his
ine's friend count Bonifatius (see Ep. 220), see, he replied that he would gladly resign all
welcomed by the fierce Moors and the perse- the episcopal estates, if the people would
cuted Donatists, had swept Numidia and support him and his brethren wholly by their
Africa. Carthage, Cirta, and Hippo alone re- offerings. " Sed nunquam id laici suscipere
mained untaken (Possid. xxviii.). Bonifatius, voluerunt " The whole management of the
routed by Gaiseric, was besieged by him in property of the see was entrusted to the more
Hippo itself. Augustine had exhorted all capable clergy in rotation, subject only to an
bishops, so long as they had any flocks to annual report to himself. He would never
minister to, to remain at their posts {Ep. 228 ;
increase the estate by purchase, but he
Possid. XXX.) but many, whose dioceses were
; accepted bequests. Only he refused them if
swept away, took refuge, like Possidius him- he thought they entailed hardship upon the
Hippo. Up to the time of his death,
self, at natural heirs. He felt but little interest in
during three months of the siege, Augustine —
such affairs his part was that of Mary, not
was working at his luifinished refutation of that of Martha. Even building he left to his
Julian. He prayed, so he told his friends at clergy, only interfering if the plans seemed
table, that God would either see fit to deliver extravagant. If the annual accounts shewed
the city, or fortify His servants to bear His a deficit, he would announce to the Christian
will, or at any rate would take him out c)f this people that he had nothing left to spend on
,
world to Himself. In the third month he was the poor. Sometimes he would have church
! attacked by fever. Now, as on other marked plate melted to relieve the poor or ransom
occasions (Possid. xxix.), his prayer was prisoners. His clergy lived with him, and no
heard. He healed a sick man who came to one who joined them was permitted to retain
him as he lay upon his death-bed. He had a any property of his own. If one of them
copy of the Penitential Psalms written out, swore at table, one of the regulation number
cups of wine (these were strictly limited,
and fixed to the wall opposite his bed. For ten of
even for visitors) was cut off by way of fine.
days, at his special request, he was left alone,
except when the physician came or food was Women, even near relatives, were excluded.
:

AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 87

He never would speak to them solus cum solis. xxiv. cf. I. xviii., and supra,
; § 7, b). But
He was prompt in visiting the fatherless and even now, he claims to have reached only
widows in their affliction, and the sick. But problematical results. The de Catechizandis
he would never visit the feminarum monasteria Riidibus (c. 400) gives a syllabus of the
except under urgent necessity. In regard to course for catechumens, with hints as to
death, he was fond of quoting the dying effective method in their instruction. It is
Ambrose, who replied to his friend's entreaty full of wisdom, and suggestive to all engaged
that he would ask God for a respite of life : in teaching. The de Spiritu et Litera (supra,
" I have not so lived as to be ashamed to § 10) was supplemented (c. 413) by the
remain with you ;but neither do I fear to book de Fide et Operibus, in which he deals
die, for we have a gracious God." To this with the obligations of the Christian life,
artless picture, drawn by Possidius, it seems insisting that faith cannot save us without
impertinent to add supplementary touches. charity. Here occurs the often quoted refer-
Possidius, as Loofs has excellently remarked, ence to the Lord's Prayer as the quotidiana
shews himself saturated by the consciousness medela for sins not demanding public penance
that he is erecting a lasting memorial to a (xxvi. 48), nor even fraternal rebuke (correptio.
great historical personage. Matt, xviii. 15, cl. Serm. 352). The Encheiri-
Without doubt Augustine is the most dion (c. 421) is Augustine's most complete
commanding religious personality of the early attempt at a brief summary of Christian
church. No Christian writer since the doctrine. Nominally it is based on the triple
apostolic age has bequeathed to us so deep an scheme of Fides, Spes, Charitas. But the
insight into the working of a character pene- latter two are very briefly treated at the end ;

trated with the love of God, none has struck practically the whole comes under the head
deeper into the heart of religion in man. of Fides, and is an exposition of the Creed and
C. Influence. — §14. Retractations and Other its corollaries. It should be compared with
Writings.— Shortly before his last illness the much earher tract de Fide' et Symbolo
(Possid. xxviii.) he went over all his writings, (supra, § 7, 6). On the de Trinitate, see above,
noting points, especially in the earlier books, §11. The last work to be specially mentioned
which he would wish amended. The result is is the de Doctrina Christiana (written in 397
his two books of Retractationes, which, from as far as III. xxv.), which contains Augustine's
the chronological order, and the mention of principles of Scriptural exposition, and a dis-
the circumstances which elicited the several cussion of the exegetical " rule " of Tyconius.
writings, places the literary history of St. Bk. iv. (added in 426) is on the method and
Augustine on an exceptionally sure footing. spirit in which the sense of Scripture should
He enumerates, characterizes, and identifies be taught. It supplements the more special
by the first words, two hundred and thirty- "pedagogics" of the de Catech. Rudibtis.
two books. His letters and sermons he Of Augustine as a writer, Gibbon says
mentions collectively, but he did not live to " His style, though sometimes animated by
reconsider them in detail. Possidius includes the eloquence of passion, is usually clouded
most of them in the indiculus of Augustine's by false and affected rhetoric." This verdict "
works appended to the Life ;but it is not would gain in justice if the words " usually
always easy to identify them by the titles he and " sometimes " were transposed. August-
employs. Some of the letters, however, are ine had indeed learned and taught rhetoric to
counted as " books " in the Retractations, while some purpose but tried by Aristotle's cri-
the books de Unitate Ecclesiae, de Bono Vidui- terion—
;


the revelation of character Augustine
tatis ad Julianum, and de Perfectione Justitiae stands far above the category of rhetorical
are passed over (being reckoned as letters) in writers. He rarely or never spends words
the Retractations. The Sermons are not chrono- upon mere effect. He is always intent upon
logically arranged in the Bened. ed. ; some bringing home to his hearers or readers things
are duplicate recensions of the same discourse. which he feels to be momentously real. He
Augustine preached extempore, but with handles subjects of intimate and vital interest
careful preparation [de Cat. Rud. 2, 3) ;his to the human spirit. And whether he is right
words were taken down by shorthand, or else or wrong, his deep feeling cannot fail to kindle
dictated by himself. On one occasion we the hearts of those who read him.
read (Possid. xv.) that he abandoned his pre- § 15. Asceticism. Estimate of Poverty and
pared matter and spoke on another subject, Riches. —Among the attractions which Mani-^
with the result of the conversion of a Mani- cheism had for Augustine in his youth, the
chean who happened to be present. His strict continency supposed to prevail among
homilies [tractatus) on St. John, and on the the perfecti (supra, § 4) had been prominent.
"Epistle of John to the Parthians " (i.e. i His whole early experience had led him to
John), belong to the ripest period of his theo- regard sexual temptation as the great ordeal of
logical power, about 416 ; these and the life. Disillusioned with the perfecti, he was
somewhat later Enarrationes in Psalmos are fired with the ideals of Catholic monasticism
his- most important exegetical works. (§ 6), and one of his earliest resolves at
the
Many of his works have been already men- time of his conversion was to forswear for
tioned in connexion with the occasion of their ever even lawful marriage. The whole drift
production. For a full hst of other writings, of Christian feeUng at that period was in this
see D. C. B. (4-vol. ed.), s.v., and the art. of direction. The influence of Ambrose, the
Loofs referred to below. But one or two of horror of representative churchmen at the
special importance must be briefly charac- anti-monastic tenets of Jovinian and Vigil-
terized. He accomplished by 415 the task, antius, the low tone even of nominally Christ-
his first attempt at which had failed, of a ian society in an age of degenerate civilization,
commentary on Genesis ad literam (Retr. II. all tended to fix in him the conviction, exem-
— ; _

88 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS


plified in his last letter to count Bonifatius, ham, the rich young man, the camel and the
that practically the one escape from an needle's eye, St. Paul's charge to the rich in
immoral life was in the vow of monastic this world but his treatment of the question
;

continence. He is aware of the difficulties of is not constructively built on first principles.


the questions raised, and endeavours to face He perceives that it is the spirit, not the mere
them in his books de Bono Conjugali, de Vir- fact of riches or poverty that is all-important
ginitate (401, against Jovinian), and de even a rich man may be poor in spirit and
Continentia. He is specially anxious not to ready to suffer not only the loss of all, but
depreciate marriage but in his attempt to
; martyrdom itself, for Christ's sake (see Serm.
explain the transmission of original sin, not So-^ 14; Ep. 157,29,34,36. etc.; de Virg. 14).
merely by the fact " that the human embryo —
Yet riches and this is the reflection towards
grows from the very first in a soil positively —
which he gravitates are, as a matter of ex-
sinful," but by the assumption that the mode perience, a great hindrance the rich are as
;

of ordinary human generation is inevitably a rule the chief offenders " difficile est ut non
sinful, he fairly lays himself open to the charge plura peccata contrahant " (in Psalm, cxxxii.
of doing so (de Nupt. II. 15 Enchir. xii.
; 4), therefore
" abstineamus nos, fratres, a pos-
"
34; de Civ. XIV. xvi.-xxi.). The orthodox sessione rei privatae fac locum domino
. . .

theology of original sin has by common consent (ib. cxx-xi.") the counsel of poverty is the
;

dropped this element of the Augustinian safe course. Augustine bases this on the
theory, which shifts the fundamental Christian temptation to misuse of wealth this would ;

condemnation of sensuality from the basis of tend to place the man who uses his wealth
moral insight to that of semi-Manichean well and wisely, overcoming temptation, in
dualism. But Julian was wrong in setting it God's service, higher than him who evades the
down wholly to Augustine's Manichean past. trial. But the drift of church feehng was too
This may at most account for a bias, which strong for this thought to prevail. Augustine
neither his subsequent philosophical studies and Pelagius were agreed that monks as a
nor the atmosphere of the church were likely class must rank above " secular " Christians ;

to eradicate. Augustine only exaggerates an widely removed as Augustine was from the
instinct not dominant, but really present Pelagian idea of merit, yet practically he often
(Matt. xix. 12 I. Cor. vii. i, 26) in the Christian
; subordinates the importance of the inward to
religion from the first, strengthened by the the outward, of character to works. But
influences of the times, especially that of monks must live, and, as we have seen, August-
the Christian Platonism, and by the end of ine would have them work. "
To take no
the 4th cent, elevated to unassailable supre- thought for the morrow" means to seek first
macy. In that cent, the influx of heathen the Kingdom of God not improvidence or
;

society into the church threatened her dis- laziness, but singleness of aim is the note of
tinctive character as a holy society. The the Christian life (in Serm. in Mont. II. 56).
monastic ideal of life, with its corollary of Augustine had occasion (Ep. 211) to address
a double standard of Christian morality a long letter to his nuns, giving directions for
baleful as the latter was in its effects was — the abatement of evils incidental to the com-
mon
probably the church's then only possible re- life, and forregulation of their
the
sponse to the challenge of a momentous peril. prayers, food, and other details.
costume,
Augustine introduced monachism into North This letter, a model of good sense and right-
Africa, and its spread there was rapid. In mindedness, is the basis of the " Regula " for
Hippo it was compulsory for the clergy. At monks printed among his works. This Rule
first, Augustine permitted a " secular " clergy, is therefore an adaptation of Augustine's actual
but toward the end of his life the permission counsels, but can hardly be from his own
was revoked. With celibacy went the com- hand. It has been much valued by monastic
mon life and the obUgation of absolute per- reformers, and was the basis of the rules of
sonal poverty. We saw above (§ 7, a) how St. Norbet, of St. Dominic (i2i6),and of the
Augustine had followed, early in his Christian different communities of "canons regular"
career, the example of Anthony. He took the and friars which have borne the title of
communism of Acts iv. 32 as the normal ideal " Augustinian " (from 1244).
of Christian life (Enarr. in Ps. cxxxi. 5), and It will be noticed that Augustine's theory
his community was modelled upon it [supra, of property is vitiated by the assumption that
§ 13). At the same time, in the book de Acts iv. 32 implies a permanent condemnation
Opcre Monachorum (c. 400), he insists that of private property. This was even more
monks must work, and not idly rely upon the conspicuously the case with St. Ambrose, who
alms of the faithful. He shews an almost speaks very strongly of the duty of Christians
prophetic appreciation of monastic abuses to treat their possessions as the property of
(cf. what he says of the Euchites, de Haer. the poor. Augustine, in a passage not wholly
Ivii.). He regards poverty as a consilium (de consistent with some referred to above, speaks
Bono Con), xxiii. 30, Ep. 15729), not a prae- similarly of the private property of Christians
ceptum. Worldly possessions are allowed to as the common property of all to treat it ;

the good as well as to the evil, " et a mails otherwise is damnabilis usurpatio (Ep. 10535).
habetur et a bonis tanio tnelius habetur
; This " Christian communism," it may be re-
quanta minus amatur " (Ep. 1532", cf. de Civ. marked in passing, differs from that of Proud-
XVIII. liv.). The Pelagians, who naturally hon (" la propriete c'est le vol") as the duty
insisted on human effort as a condition of to give differs from the right to take. In one
salvation, took a severer view of wealth than point Augustine takes the opposite view to
did Augustine (Epp. 157, i8632, divites bap- Ambrose, namely, in the theory of church
tizatos, sqq.). He combats them on BibUcal property. Ambrose, in his resistance to the
grounds : Dives and Lazarus, the rich Abra- action of the empress J ustina, who attempted
AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 89
to transfer the church at Milan to the Arian exist, do so by " participation " of God (in
bishop, anticipated the medieval theory of the
absolute right of the church to ecclesiastical
Joh. Tr. xxxix. 8 —
the Platonic doctrine of
fj.4de^Li] but by comparison with God they
;

property, a right with which the emperor, are non-existent (Enarr. in Ps. xxxviii. 22,
who is intra ecclesiam, may not presume to cxxxiv. 4). Real being is incommutable being,
tamper. This agrees perfectly with principles which belongs to God only. Reality, then,
laid down by Augustine in the de Civitate Dei can only be found out of time : " ut ergo et tu
(supra, § 9 imperiutn in ecclesia, etc.).
: But sis, transcende tempus " (in Joh. Tr. xxxviii.
Augustine, defending the action of Honorius 10) anything mutable is not really existent

;

(or his ministers) in transferring to the it is in process, has been, is to be, but is not
Catholics the church propertyof the Donatists, in being " praescns quaero, nihil stat " (ib.).
:

strongly maintains that all rights to property Absolute good is therefore the only reality,
are created by the State. The church's external namely, God. Absolute evil is the non-
power and property are hers by indirect Divine existent. All created existence, so far as it
right, i.e. because they are conferred on her has reality (" Deus fecit hominem, substantiam
by the ordinatissima potestas of the sovereign [i.e. aliquidesse] fecit," Enarr. in Ps. Ixviii. 5),
power {Ep. los-"*. «). " Per jura regum possi- is good ("in quantum sumus, boni sumus," de
dentur possessiones " {in Joh. Tr. vi. 25) ; the Doctr. I. 35). Theie is no " natura tenebra-
Donatist objects to state interference with rum," no substance (Conf. IV. xv. 24).
evil
religion, but " Noli dicere Quid mihi et Regi ! Sin has roots in the evil will
its it is negative
;

Quid tibi et possessioni ? " (ib. 15). As one (" non est substantia," Ps. Ixviii. 3, Vulg.);
side of Augustine's theory of the church pre- the evil will consists in "inordinate moveri,
pares the way for the Gregorian system (§ g), bona inferiora superioribus praeponendo " (de
so here we have that conception of Apostolic Gen. ad lit. xi. 17) sin is therefore an in-
;

poverty consistently applied to church pro- clinatio in nihilum yet the sinner " non
;

perty, which underlies so much medieval "


penitus perit, sed in infimis ordinatur
reaction against the Gregorian system from (Enarr. in Ps. viii. 19) —
even Satan, in that
Arnold of Brescia onwards. he exists, has something of the good, though
§ 16. Intellectual Influence on Christian he is worse than the worst we know. " In
Posterity. —
The diverse influences which met quantum mali sumus, in tantum etiam minus
in Augustine, held together rather than fused sumus " (de Doctr., u.s.). It is easy to
into unison by the strength of his superb see that this idealism, taken by itself, tends
personality, parted in after-times into often to lower the importance of everything that
conflicting streams. It has been said with takes place in time, of everything empirical
truth (Loofs) that three primary elements and historical, in comparison with the trans-
determine Augustine's complex realm of ideas : cendent being and unchangeable will of God,
his neo-Platonist philosophical training [supra, in which nothing " takes place," but all is
§ 5), his profound Biblical studies (§§ 7, h, 10, eternally, immovably real. In Augustine this
init.), and his position as an officer of the idealism did not stand alone but under all
;

church. In combinations which we can in his passionate appreciation of the church and
part analyse, these elements, given the the historical elements of Christianity there
Augustine of a.d. 387, go to constitute is in the background, as a limiting influence,

Augustine as he became the greatest of the the appeal to the view of things sub specie
Latin doctors, the pioneer of modern Christi- aeterni and the drift of his theological re-

anity in his threefold significance for the
;

flection strengthened this element in his view


church of all time. Augustine is (a) the of ultimate problems.
prince of theists, (h) the incomparable type of From this point of view we can partly under-
reasoned devotion to the Catholic church, and stand Augustine's famous conception of the
(c) the founder of the theology of sin and universality of the Christian Religion. This he
grace. insists on in his letter to Deogratias (Ep. 102)
/(a) Theistic Transcendentalism. —The passion contra Paganos. At all times, he writes, since
of theism was the core of his personal religion. the world began, the same faith has been
His was an experimental theism, a theism of revealed to men, at one time more obscurely,
the heart. The often quoted words, " Tu at another more plainly, as ihe circumstances
Domine fecisti nos ad te, et inquietum est cor altered ; but what we now call the Christian
nostrum donee requiescat in te " (Conf. I. i.), religion is but the clearest revelation of a
sum up his inmost personal experience. This religion as old as the world. Never has its
is, above all, what Augustine found in the offer of salvation been withheld from those
Psalms, which were his introduction to the who were worthy of it (see references. Renter,
deeper study of Scripture (supra, § 6). " Mihi p. 91 n), even though they may not be (like
autem adhaerere Deo bonum est " (Ps. Ixxii. J ob, etc.) mentioned in the sacred record. Such
28, Vulg.) is the immovable centre upon men, who followed His commands (however
which his whole religion and theology turns. unconsciously), were implicit believers in
But his theism was also speculative and Christ. The changing (and therefore semi-
metaphysical, and intimately bound up with real) form represents the one constant reality,
the philosophical framework of his theology. the saving grace of God, revealed through the
God, though not beyond our apprehension (" ex passion and resurrection of Christ (Ep. 18915).
minima quidem parte, sed tamen sine dubi- (b) Catholic Churchmanship. Of this we —
tatione," c. Ep. Fund. 5), is beyond our know- have already spoken (§ 8). Augustine was not
ledge " ego sum qui sum quae mens potest
; the first to formulate belief in the Holy
capere ? " (in Joh. Tr. viii. 8). To be, to be Catholic Church but no one before him had
;

good, to be one, are correlative attributes ;


reflected so deeply, or expressed himself with
they belong to God alone. All things that such inimitable tenderness and devotion, oa
— :

90 AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS


the church as the nurse and home of the sical conception of Reality (see references to
Christian life, and the saving virtue of her Gregory VII., in Renter, pp. 499
means of grace. The church to him is the (c) Influence of his
seq.).
Doctrine of Grace. —
society of the saints, the Kingdom of God on Augustine's conception of the church, little as
earth. With the whole drift of contemporary it was modified in practice by his transcen-
churchmanship, asceticism, miracles, relics, dental theory of " Being " taken by itself, was
the incipient cultus of saints (he believes in more seriously affected by his predestinarian
their intercession, but strongly dissuades from doctrine, which his transcendentalism certain-
" placing our hope " in them " noli facer e "
: ly tended to reinforce. Augustine had first
;

if we pray to God alone, we shall be the more found salvation in the Catholic church (c. Ep.
likely to benefit by their intercession non
:
" Fund. 6) in self-surrender to the authority of
solum tibi non succensebunt ; sed tunc ama- Christ [c. Acad. III. 43: " mihi autem cer-
bunt, tunc magis favebunt " but Augustine
; tum est nusquam prorsus ab auctoritate
is evidently correcting a known tendency to Christi discedere," etc.). His whole religious
invocation, Serni. 46I''), he is in entire sym- thought, founded upon his experience of the
pathy. It is unnecessary to multiply examples Catholic church, turned upon Christ as its
of what every page of his writings abundantly fountain-head and centre (see the passages
illustrates. But it must be noted that his collected by Reuter, pp. 19-25). His whole
interest throughout is in the spiritual life being, and that of the church, was owing to
rather than in the external system the latter ; the grace of Christ (" gratia Dei per Christum,
is but the means to the former. Augustine, propter Christum," etc.) the gratia Christi is
;

first of all extant Christian writers, identifies the central idea of his theology. We saw
the Kingdom of God (so far as it exists on above (§ 10) by what steps he was led, from
earth its full realization, in common with
; the inward recognition of the sovereignty of
all Christian antiquity, he reserves for the grace in his personal life, to the logical con-
end) with the Catholic church but not in : clusion that salvation depends upon the
respect of its government or organization. It Divine will irrespective of merit or of anything
is the Kingdom of Christ in so far as Christ which takes place on earth. Membership of
reigns in His saints and they (even on earth, in the church, a holy life, use of the means of
a sense) reign with Him. From this point of grace, may be indispensable to the pre-
view, we may trace the negative influence of destined ; but they are in no sense conditions
Augustine's idealism (supra, a) upon his view of predestination, which is absolute. They
of the church. We saw above (§ 15, e) his depend on it, not it on them. Even the
inability to complete his theory of church historical work of Christ is secondary to the
"
authority by the essential feature of an infalli- Divine purpose to save some and " pass over
ble organ of authority. Councils are authori- the rest of mankind. Hence, on the one hand,
tative, but earlier councils are subject to later the doctrine of particular redemption (for none
ones, there is no final expression of absolute perish for whom Christ died, Ep. 169*, while
positive truth (of course there is relative truth ;
those predestined ad interitum are "non ad
the church will never rehabilitate Arianism vitam aeternam sui sanguinis pretio compar-
nor Pelagianism inferiora superioribtts prae- ati" in J oh. Tr. xlvii. 11, 4), on the other
ponendo, see above, a). Truth is, ideally, hand, a tendency to make the atonement not
perceived by the reason (de Vtil. Cred. 34) ;
an efficient cause of redemption but a proof (to
infallibility is an ideal attribute of the church, the elect) of God's love " m< ostenderet Deus
:

its realization now is subject


to the semi-reality dilectionem suam," etc. [de Catech. Rud. 4 ;

which is the condition of all things on earth. cf. Ep. 17715 :


" gratia Dei quae revelata est
She has catholica Veritas, but never as ultimate per passionem et resurrectionem Christi ").
truth that man can explicitly grasp. To the The number of the predestined is irrevocably
church, as to the individual, it may be said, fixed, and this certus numerus constitute the
" ut et tu sis, transcende tempus." Ideally, church as it will be in the perfect Kingdom of
authority is but the " door " to reason ;
God. The church on earth, viewed as it is
authority is for the babes, the stulti, who are in God's sight, in its true " being," consists
not the type of mature Christian growth. The of the elect and of them alone. The old
intelligendi vivacitas is for the paucissimi, the Catholic axiom extra ecclesiam nulla salus thus
credendi simplicitas is safest for the turba (c. acquires a new and unlooked-for meaning
Ep. Fund. 5). But Augustine does not press out of the number of the elect there is no salva-
these thoughts to their full issue. " Alia est tion. This is the Augustinian doctrine of the
ratio verum tacendi, alia verum dicendi neces- communion of saints, which stands in contrast
sitas . . . ne pejores faciaimis eos qui non with the externa communio or visible church
intelligunt dum volumus eos qui intelligunt as the invisible reality with the semi-real
facere doctiores " {de Dona Persev. 40). Prac- phenomenon. The distinction is not quite
tically they operate negati\'ely, by leaving in identical with the familiar distinction of wheat
the vague the question of an infallible organ and tares, nominal and real Christians for
;

of authority, while the positive conception of even real Christians have no certainty that
the church is left imaffected. In the sphere they are " elect." The donum perseverantiae,
of transcendent reality, the decrees of councils which is as absolutely unmerited as that of
may be provisional only but in practice any
; faith, and is, in fact, the turning-point of the
authoritative decision is final, even the appeal whole predestinarian scheme, may fail them
to a general council [supra, § 10, b, Julian) may [supra, § 10, c). In that case they are, after
be ignored, " causa finita est " [supra, 15, d). all, vessels of wrath ;while again it may be
Medieval ecclesiasticism accepted Augustine's vouchsafed to others who are now but nominal
homage to the external fabric of the church, Christians, or not even that. When Augustine
and concerned itself little with his raetaphy- identifies the church with the Kingdom of
AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS AUGUSTINUS, AURELIUS 91

God, it is really of the communio sanctorum Phil. Transactions of the Vienna Academy,
that he is thiaking.. The logical incompati- 1890-1892, and Tassin, Hist. lit. de la Congreg.
bility of the predestinarian and the Catholic de S. Maur., Brux. 1770), completed in 1690.
view of the church is obvious, and Augustine The edition was by several hands, and was
never effected their reconciliation. The ob- attacked fiercely by the opponents of Jansen-
vious reconciliation, upon which he often ism. This was perhaps inevitable in the at-
appears to fall back, is that although the tempt to make Augustine speak for himself.
church contains many who are not " elect," The principal points of attack were the Preface,
it yet contains all the elect. But this is to by Mabillon, to the Tenth Volume, which its
assume that the Divine election is absolutely author revised under pressure, and the Index.
bound to external means, which Augustine The latter is a marvel of completeness, and
does not really hold. On the contrary, his many of its articles are in substance theologi-
conception of the universality of the One cal treatises. The Vita, mainly by Vaillant,
Religion of Christ {supra, a. sub fin.) brings in is largely indebted to the contemporary work
Job, the Sib^'l, and doubtless many others of Tillemont, the thirteenth vol. of whose
" qui secundem Deum vi.xenmt eique placuer- Memoires, a Life of St. Augustine, in 1075 pp.,
unt, pertinentes ad spiritalem Hierusalem
" The Bened.
appeared after his death (1698).
{de Civ. XVIII. xlvii.). Again, there are the ed. was reprintedat Venice, 1729-1735. The
unjustly excommunicated, who have nothing eleven vols, inwere replaced in the
folio
of the character of schismatics " hos coronat
: next reprints (Venice, 1756- 1769, Bassano,
in occulto Pater," etc. (de Vera Relig. ii. cf. 1797-1807) by eighteen in quarto. The Paris
de Bapt. I. 26, Epp. 78. 3, 250, fragm. ad. fin.). reprint of Gaume (1836- 1839) and that of
But practically Augustine passes to and fro Migne (in the Patr. Lat., vols. 32-46) return to
between the thought of the Humerus prae- the arrangement of eleven vols. ; but in Migne
destinatorum and tliat of the visible church some of the vols, are subdivided, and a twelfth
without being careful to distinguish them, of supplementarjr matter (Patr. Lat. 47) is
and he freely applies to the latter the exalted added. This edition is better printed than
and ideal prerogatives which are theoretically many of the series, and is the most convenient
proper to the former. for reference. Its text should be superseded
To this side of Augustine's teaching applies by that of the Vienna Corpus but at present ;

the remark of Gibbon, that " the rigid system only a portion of Augustine's works have
of Christianity which he framed or restored appeared in this series (Confessions, de Civ.
has been entertained with public applause and Dei, Letters, 1-133, Speculum, several exegeti-
secret reluctance by the Latin church." In cal works, anti-Manichean treatises, various
fact, as the ecclesiastical side of Augustine's anti- Pelagian works, and a vol. containing de
thought supplied the inspiration for the medi- Fid. et Symb., the Relractationes, and other
eval theocracy, so his predestinarian idea of works (1900); also the excerpts of Eugippius,
the church furnished the theological founda- an edition important for the light thrown by
tion for most of the medieval counter-move- it on the text of Augustine).
ments, especially those of Marsilius, of Wyclif,(2) Editions of Separate Works. We have a —
and of Hus and the Zwinglian idea of
; good edition of the de Civitate Dei, by Dom-
an invisible church more than an bart (Triibner, 1863), and a more recent one of
is little
isolation of this doctrine from the Catholic bks. xi. and xii., with intro., literal trans., and
context which surrounded it in Augustine's notes by Rev. H. Gee (Bell, 5s.), who has also
own theology. ed. In Joannis Evang. Tract, xxiv.-xxvii. and
§17. Select Bibliography, (i) History of Pub- Ixvii.-lxxix. (is. 6d. each, Bell), with trans,
lication. —
Augustine's Retradationes, coupled by Canon H. Brown a number of smaller ;

with the Indiculus of Possidius, give a prac- tracts, and the de Trinitate in the SS. Patr.
tically complete list of his authentic works Opusc. Selecta, by H. Hurter, S.J. (Inns-
and of the occasions of their composition and bruck, Wagner) Anti-Pelagian Treatises,
;

publication. During his lifetime they were with valuable Introduction by Dr. Bright
widely multiplied in Latin Christendom (Pos- (Clarendon Press, 1880) de Catechiz. Rud., by ;

sid. vii.)the Emendatiora Exempla, revised


; Kriiger (in his Quellenschriften, 4, Frieburg,
by and bequeathed to the church of
himself, 1891) Confessions, by Pusey (Oxf. 1838),
;

Hippo, were preserved through the disasters and Gaume (Paris, 1836, i2mo). The new
which overtook the town (ib. xviii.). The ed. of Tract, in Joh. Ixvii.-lxxix., by H. F.
history of the study and literary influence of Stewart (Camb. 1900), has a translation and
Augustine in after-times must be read in the some admirably digested introductory matter.
histories of Christian doctrine. For the nth
cent, we have a useful investigation by Mirbt
(3) Translations. —
The translations in the
Oxford Library of the Fathers, and in Clark's
(pupil of Renter), Die Siellung Augustins in series (Edin. 1866- 1872), are incorporated
der Publizistik des Grcgorianischen Kirchen- and supplied with useful introductory matter
streits (Leipz. 1888). The history of manu- in the Post-Nicene Library (ser. i), ed. by
script transmission may be read in the prefa- Dr. Philip Schaff (Buft'alo, 1886-8). Three
tory notes to the several treatises in the Anti-Pelagian Treatises, by Woods and John-
Benedictine cd., and in the Prolegomena to ston (D. Nutt, 1887). The Confessions, bks.
the instalments of Augustine's works that have i.-ix.,are translated by Dr. Charles Bigg
so far been published in the Vienna Corpus (Methuen, 1897, with a most interesting Intro-
Script. Eccles. Latinorum. The list of editions duction). The extracts in this article follow
since the first by Arnerbach (Basel, 1506) may this translation. Another ed. by Temple
be found in the article by Loots (infra). The Scott, with intro. by Mrs. Meynell, is pub. by
standard ed. is that by the Benedictines of Mowbray (7s. 6d. net.), and follows Dr. Pusey's
St. Maur (see Kukula and Rottmanner in Hist. trans. Dr. Hutchings trans, and ed. the Con-
92 AUGUSTINUS AUGUSTINUS
fessions (Longmans, 2S. 6d.). Preaching and The materials for the life of the first archbp.
Teaching ace. to S. Aug. is a new trans, of of Canterbury are almost entirely comprised
the de Doct. Christ, bk. iv., and de Rudihus in the first and second books of Bede's Eccle-
Catech. with 3 intro. essays by Rev. W. J. V. siastical History, with some additional points
Baker and C. Bickersteth and a preface by in Gocelin's Life of St. Augustine, Thorn's
Bp. Gore (Mowbray, 2s. 6d.). Chronicles of St. Augustine's Abbey a few
(4) Biographies. —
In addition to that of letters of Gregory the Great the Lives of ;
;

Possidius, and those of the Benedictines and Gregory the Great by Paul the Deacon and
Tillemont mentioned above, see Remy Ceillier, John the Deacon.
Auteurs Sacres, vols. 11 and 12 Acta Sanc- His mission to England was due to the
;

torum Aug. vol. 6 Poujoulat, Hist, de Saint circumstance of Gregory the Great, a monk in
;

Aug. (Paris, 1843) Bohringer, Aur. Aug. the monastery of St. Andrew, on the Caelian
;

(2 ed., Stuttg. 1878) Naville, St. Aug. :


; Mount at Rome, one day passing through the
Etude sur le developpenient de sa pensee, etc. market-place of the city, and noticing three
(Geneva, 1872) Bindemann, der h. Aug. (3 boys exposed for sale who told him they were
;

vols., Berlin, 1844-1869) Harnack, Augus- Angles from Deira, a province of King Ella.
;

tin's Confessionem (Giessen, 1888). The By a playful interpretation of the word he was
greater Church Histories, and works on Chris- reminded of angels, delivered from tvrath, with
tian literature, deal fully with Augustine. A songs of hallelujah. Years passed away and
brochure, S. Augustine and African Church the idea ripened into a mission to Britain
Divisions by the Rev. W. J. Sparrow Simpson, headed by Augustine the abbot of St. Andrew's.
was pub. by Longmans in 1910. Of articles In the summer of a.d. 596 they set out,
in Dictionaries, etc., we may mention those of traversed the north of Italy, and reached
de Pressense, in D. C. B. (4-vol. ed.), which the neighbourhood of Aix, in Provence, and
gives a very useful list of the contents of the the north of France. They crossed the.^
several vols, of his works in the great Bene- English Channel and landed at Ebbe's Fleet,
dictine edition, and Loofs, in Herzog-Hauck's in the Isle of Thanet and kingdom of Kent.
Real-Encyclopddie (Leipz. 1897), an article King Ethelbert received the missionaries in
worthy of the writer's high reputation, and a friendly spirit, either in the open space near
much used in the present article. Ebbe's Fleet, or, according to another ac-
(5) Doctrinal and General. For older litera- — count, under an ancient oak in the middle of
ture, see the references to fuller bibliographies the island. To make a deeper impression on
at the end. The Augustinische Studien of the monarch's mind, Augustine came up from
Hermann Renter (Gotha, 1887), so frequently the shore in solemn procession, preceded by
quoted above, are beyond comparison for a verger carrying a large silver cross, and
thoroughness and impartiality, and indispens- followed by one bearing aloft on a board,
able. The histories of doctrine should be painted and gilded, a representation of the
consulted. Harnack's treatment of Augustine Saviour. Then came the rest of the brethren
(in his Dogmengeschichte, vol. 3) is among the and the choir, headed by Honorius and the
most sympathetic and powerful portions of deacon Peter, chanting a solemn litany for
that work the writer's instinctive apprecia-
; the eternal welfare of themselves and the
tion of a great religious personality is nowhere people amongst whom they had come.
more apparent than here. Loofs's Leitfaden Ethelbert listened attentively to Augustine's
is also most useful. Mozley, The Augustinian address, delivered through interpreters, and
Doctrine of Predestination (3rd. ed. 1883) then, in a manner at once politic and courteous,
;

Nourrisson, La Philosophie de St. Augustin replied that the promises of the strangers were
(Paris, 1886, 2 vols.) Bright, Lessons from
; fair, but the tidings they announced were new
the Lives of Three Great Fathers (ed. 2, Oxf. and full of a meaning he did not understand.
1 891) ;Cunningham, St. Austin (Hulsean He could not give his assent to them and
Lectures, 1886) Bigg, Christian Platonists
; leave the customs of his people, but he pro-
of Alexandria (Bampton Lectures, 1886 ;
mised the strangers kindness and hospitality,
comparison of Aug. with Origen, etc.) ;
together with liberty to celebrate their ser-
Robertson, Regnum Dei (Bampton Lectures, vices, and undertook that none of his subjects
No. 5) E)orner, Augustinus (Berlin, 1873)
;
;
who might be so disposed should be prohibited
Gibb and Montgomery's ed. of the Confessions from espousing their religion. Augustine and
in the Camb. Patristic Texts, 1908, a valuable his companions again formed a procession, and
critical ed. with Introduction. crossing the ferry to Richborough, advanced
The above list is a mere selection. For more to Canterbury, chanting one of the solema
complete bibliography see Loofs (u.s.) Barden- ; litanies learnt from Gregory, and took up
hcwcr's Patrology, Dr. Shahan's trans. 1908, their abode in the Stable-gate, near the present
pub. by Herder, Freiburg i/B. and St. Louis, church of St. Alphege, till the king should
Mo. Potthast, Bibliotheca ist. Medii Aevi{ed.
; H make up his mind.
finally
2, 1896), vol. ii. p. 1187 Chevallier, Repertoire; Thus admitted into the city, the mission-
des sources historiques de Pressense [u.s.)
;
;
aries commended their message by their self-
Nicene and post-Nicene Libr., ser. i, vol. i. devotion and pure and chaste living. Before
A short popular Life of St. Augustine is pub. long they were allowed to worship in the
in their Fathers for £ng. Readers, by S.P.C.K., church of St. Martin, which Ethelbert's
who also pub. an Eng. trans, of the Treatise Christian queen Bertha, a Gallic princess
on the City of God, by F. R. M. Hitchcock. with bp. Liudhard for her chaplain, had been
Cheap trans, of the Confessions and the City accustomed to attend, and they were thus
of God (2 vols.) are in A. and M. Theol. Lib. encouraged to carry on their labours with
(Griffith). [a.r., 1901.] renewed zeal. At last Ethelbert avowed him-
Augustinus, St., archbp. of Canterbury. self ready to accept Christianity, and was bap-
;

AUGUSTINUS AUGUSTINUS 93

tized on Whitsunday, June 2, 597, probably was introduced, whom


the British clergy were
at St. Martin's church. unable to cure. Augustine supplicated aid
The conversion of their chief was, as is from above, and the man, we are told, forth-
illustrated again and again in the history of with recovered his sight.
medieval missions, the signal for the baptism Convinced but unwilling to alter their old
of the tribe. At the next assembly, therefore, customs, the vanquished party proposed
of the Witan, the matter was formally referred another meeting. Seven British bishops met
to the authorities of the kingdom, and they on this occasion, together with Dinoth, abbot
decided to follow the example of Ethelbert. pi the great monastery of Bangor in Flint-
Accordingly, on Dec. 25, 597, upwards of shire. Before the synod assembled, they pro-
10,000 received baptism in the waters of the posed to ask the advice of an aged hermit
Swale, at the mouth of the Medway, and thus whether they ought to change the traditions
sealed their acceptance of the new faith. of their fathers. " Yes," replied the old man,
Thus successful in the immediate object of " if the new-comer be a man of God ? " " But
the mission, Augustine repaired to France, and how," they asked, " are we to know whether
was consecrated the first archbp. of Canter- he be a man of God ? " " The Lord hath
bury by Virgilius, the metropolitan of Aries. said," was the reply, " 'Take My yoke upon
On his return he took up his abode in the you and learn of Me, for I am meek and lowly.'
wooden palace of Ethelbert, who retired to Now if this Augustine is meek and lowly, be
Reculver, and this, with an old British or assured that he beareth the yoke of Christ."
Roman church hard by, became the nucleus of " Nay, but how are we to know this ? " they
Augustine's cathedral. Another proof of the asked again. " If he rises to meet you when
king's kindness was soon displayed. To the ye approach," answered the hermit, " hear
west of Canterbury, and midway between it and follow him ; but if he despise you, and
and the church of St. Martin, was a building, fails to rise up from his place, let him also be
once a British church, but now used as a Saxon despised by you." The synod met, and Augus-
temple. This Ethelbert, instead of destroy- tine remained seated when they approached.
ing, made over to the archbishop, who dedi- It was enough. It was deemed clear that he
cated it to St. Pancras, in memory, probably, had not the Spirit of Christ, and no efforts of
of the young Roman martyr on the tombs of the archbishop could induce the British clergy
whose family the monastery on the Caelian to yield to any of his demands. Thereupon
Mount at Rome had been built. Round this Augustine broke up the conference with an
building now rose another monastery, at the angry threat that, if the British clergy would
head of which Augustine placed one of his not accept peace with their brethren, they
companions, Peter, as its first abbot. must look for war with their foes, and if they
Before, however, these arrangements were would not proclaim the way of life to the
completed, he sent Peter and Laurence to in- Saxons, they would suffer deadly vengeance
form Gregory of the success of the mission. at their hands. Thus, unsuccessful, Augus-
Gregory was overjoyed at the receipt of the tine returned to Canterbury, and there relaxed
intelligence, and after an interval sent over a none of his efforts to evangelize the Saxon
reinforcement of fresh labourers for the mis- tribes. As all Kent had espoused the Faith,
sion, amongst whom were Mellitus, Paulinus, it was deemed advisable to erect a second
and Justus. They brought ecclesiastical vest- bishopric at Rochester. Over it Augustine
ments, sacred vessels, some relics of apostles placed his companion Justus, and Etlielbert
and martyrs, a present of books, and the pall caused a cathedral to be built, which was
of a metropolitan for Augustine himself, who named after St. Andrew, in memory of the
was thus made independent of the bishops monastery dedicated to that Apostle on the
of France. In a lengthened epistle Gregory Caelian Hill at Rome, whence the missionaries
sketched out the course which the archbishop had started. At the same time, through the
was to take in developing his work. London connexion of the same monarch with the king
was to be his metropolitan see, and he was to of Essex, who was his nephew, Christianity
consecrate twelve bishops as suffragans. More- found its way into the adjacent kingdom, and
over, whenever Christianity had extended to the archbishop was able to place Mellitus in
York, he was to place there also a metropolitan the see of London, where Ethelbert built a
with a like number of bishops under him. As church, dedicated to St. Paul.
to the British bishops, they were all entrusted This was the limit of Augustine's success.
to his care, " that the unlearned might be It fell, indeed, far short of Gregory's grand
instructed, the weak strengthened by per- design ; but this had been formed on a very
suasion, the perverse corrected with author- imperfect acquaintance with the condition of
ity." Augustine, thereupon, invited the the island, the strong natural prejudices of
British clergy to a conference on the confines the British Christians, and the relations which
of Wessex, near the Severn, under an oak, long subsisted between the different Anglo-Saxon
after known as Augustine's oak. Prepared to kingdoms. On Mar. 12, 604, Gregory died, and
make considerable concessions, he yet felt two months afterwards according to some
that three points did not admit of being sacri- authorities, or a year after according to
ficed. He proposed that the British church others, Augustine followed his patron and
should (i) conform to the Roman usage in the benefactor, and was buried in the cemetery
celebration of Easter ; and (2) the rite of which he himself had consecrated, beside the
baptism and (3) that they should aid him in Roman road that ran over St. Martin's Hill
;

evangelizing the heathen Saxons. The dis- from Richborough to Canterbury.


cussion was long and fruitless. At last the The most important modern authorities for
archbishop proposed that an appeal should be the life of the first archbp. of Canterbury
made to the Divine judgment. A blind Saxon are Montalambert, Monks of the West, ill.
'

§4 AURELIAN Aurelius, marcUs


Hook, Archbishops of Canterbury, i. ; Stanley, the deaths of Justin Martyr at Rome (a.d.
Memorials of Canterbury, 4th ed. 1865 ; 166), of Polycarp at Smyrna (a.d. 167), of
IMilman, Hist, of Latin Christianity, ii. 4th ed. Blandina and Pothinus and the other sufferers
1867 ; A. J. Mason, The Mission of St. Au^. at Lyons (a.d. 177). The last-named year
to Eng., 1897; Bp. Browne, Aug. and his seems indeed to have witnessed an outburst
Companions, 1895 ;Gasquet, Missions of St. of popular fury against the new sect, and this
Aug. ;Bp. Collins, Beginnings of Eng. Chris- could not have been allowed to rage without
tianity. [G.F.M.] the emperor's sanction, even if there were no
* Aurelian, a.d. 270-275. The few facts special edicts like those of which Melito
which connect the name of this emperor with speaks (Eus. H. E. iv. 26) directly authoriz-
the history of the Christian church are as ing new measures of repression. It was ac-
follows: —(i) he is said (Vopiscus, c. 20) to
have reproached the Roman senate for not
cordingly an era of Apologies Justin had led
;

the way under Antoninus Pius, and the second


consulting the Sibylline books, as their fathers treatise that bears his name was probably
would have done, at a time of danger and per- written just before his own martyrdom under
plexity. " It would seem," he said, " as if Aurelius. To the years 177 and 178 are
you were holding your meetings in a church assigned those which were written by Melito,
of the Christians instead of in the temple of Tatian, Athenagoras, Apollinaris, and Theo-
all the gods." The words clearly imply a philus, perhaps also that of Miltiades. The
half-formed suspicion that the decline of the causes of this increased rigour are not difficult
old faith was caused by the progress of the to trace, (i) The upward progress of Chris-
new. The decree of Gallienus recognising tianity brought its teachers into rivalry with
Christianity as a religio licita had apparently the Stoic philosophers who up to this time,
stimulated church building. (2) Startled by partly for good and partly for evil, had occu-
the rapid progress of Christianity, Aurelian is pied the position of spiritual directors in the
said to have resolved towards the close of his families in which there was any effort to rise
reign on active measures for its repression. out of the general debasement. They now
The edict of Gallienus was to be rescinded. A found themselves brought into contact with
thrill of fear pervaded the Christian popula- men of a purer morality and a nobler fortitude
tion of the empire. The emperor was sur- than their own, and with a strange mysterious
rounded by counsellors who urged on him a power which enabled them to succeed where
policy of persecution, but his death hindered others failed. Just in proportion, therefore,
the execution of his plans. (3) In the interval as the emperor was true to his Stoicism was
we find him connected, singularly enough, he likely to be embittered against their rivals.
with the action of the church in a case of (2) Atrace of this bitterness is found in his
heresy. Paul of Samosata had been chosen own Meditations
(xi. 3). Just as Epictetus
as bp. of Antioch in a.d. 260. A synod of (Arrian, Epict. iv. 7) had spoken of the
bishops including Firmilianus of the Cappado- " counterfeit apathy " which was the off-
cian Caesarea, Gregory Thaumaturgus, and spring not of true wisdom, but " of madness
others, had condemned his teaching but on
; or habit like that of the Galileans, " so the
receiving promises of amendment had left him emperor contrasts the calm considerate pre-
in possession of the see. Another (a.d. 270) ference of death to life, which he admired,
deposed him, and Domnus was appointed in with the " mere obstinacy {Trapdra^i^) of the
his place. Paul refused to submit and kept Christians." " The wise man," he says,
possession of the episcopal residence. Such " should meet death ae/xvuis kol drpaYi^Sws.
was the position of affairs at Antioch when The last word has, there seems reason to be-
Aurelian, having conquered Zenobia, became lieve, a special significance. Justin, towards
master of the city. The orthodox bishops the close of his second Apology, presented to
appealed to the emperor to settle whose the this emperor, had expressed a wish that some
property was, and he adjudged it to belong one would stand up, as on some lofty rostrum,
to those to whom the bishops in Italy and and " cry out with a tragic voice, Shame,
in Rome had addressed their epistles (Eus. shame on you who ascribe to innocent men the
H. E. viii. 27-30). [e.ji.p.] things which ye do openly yourselves. . . .

Aurelius, Marcus, emperor, a.d. 161- 180. Repent ye, be converted to the ways of purity
The policy adopted by Marcus Aurelius to- and wisdom (Merd^tcr^^e, (Fu<f>povi(Tdr)Tf)." If
wards the Christian church cannot be separ- we believe that his acts were in harmony with
ated from the education which led him to his words or that what he wrote had come
embrace Stoicism, and the long training which under the emperor's eye, it is natural to see
he had, after he had attracted the notice of in the words in which the latter speaks so
Hadrian and been adopted by Antoninus Pius, scornfully of the " tragic airs " of the Chris-
in the art of ruling. In the former he had tians a reference to what had burst so rudely
learnt, as he records with thankfulness, from upon his serene tranquillity. (3) The period
his master Diognetus (Medit. i. 6), the temper was one of ever-increasing calamities. The
of incredulity as to alleged marvels, like those earthquakes which had alarmed Asia under
of seers and diviners. Under Hadrian and Antoninus were but the prelude to more
Antoninus Pius he had acquiesced, at least, serious convulsions. The Tiber rose to an
in a policy of toleration, checking false accu- unprecedented height and swept away the
sations, requiring from the accusers proof of public granaries. This was followed by a
some other crime than the mere profession of famine, and that by a pestilence, which spread
Christianity. It is, therefore, startling to find from Egypt and Ethiopia westward. Every-
that he takes his place in the list of persecutors where on the frontiers there were murmurs of
along with Nero and Domitian and Decius. insurrection or invasion. The year 166 was
The annals of martyrdom place in his reign long known as the " annus calamitosus," and
AUSONIUS, DECIMUS MAGNUS AUSONIUS, DECIMUS MAGNUS d5
it was in that year that the persecution broke in high regard by the emperor and his sons
out and that Justin suffered. These calami- and accompanied the former in his expedition,
ties roused the superstition of the great mass against the Alemanni. It was no doubt
of the people, and a wild fanaticism succeeded during the residence of the court at Treves at
to an epicurean atheism. The gods were this time that he composed his Mosella. From
wroth, and what had roused their anger but Valentinian he obtained the title of Comes and
the presence of those who denied them ? the office of Quaestor, and on the accession
" Christianos ad leones " seemed the remedy of Gratian became successively Prefect of
for every disaster. The gods might accept Latium, Libya, and Gaul, and finally, a.d. 379,
that as a piacular ofiering. On the other was raised to the consulship (Praef. ad Syaqr.
hand, the Christians saw in them signs of the 35, etc. Epigr. ii. iii., de fast.).
; After the
coming judgment, and of the end of the death of Gratian, a.d. 383, although he seems
world and now in apocalyptic utterances,
;
to have enjoyed the favour of Theodosius
now in Sibylline books, uttered, half exult- (Praef. ad Theodos.), it is probable that he
antly, their predictions of the impending returned to the neighbourhood of his native
woe (cf. TertuU. ad Scap. c. 3). All this, of city and spent the remainder of his life in
course, increased the irritation against them studious retirement (Ep. xxiv.). His corre-
to the white heat of frenzy (Milman's Hist, spondence with Paulinus of Nola evidently
of Christianity, bk. ii. c. 7). They not only belongs to these later years. The date of his
provoked the gods, and refused to join in death is unknown, but he was certainly alive
sacrifices to appease them, but triumphed in in A.D. 388, as he rejoices in the victory of
their fellow-citizens' miseries. Theodosius over the murderer of Gratian at
Two apparent exceptions to this policy of Aquileia (Clar. Urb. vii.).
repression have to be noticed. (1) One edition The question of the poet's religion has
of the edict npbs rh koivov ttj's 'Accas, though always been a matter of dispute. Voss, Cave,
ascribed by Eusebius (H. E. iv. 13) to Heindrich, Muratori, etc., maintain that he
Antoninus Pius, purports, as given by him, to was a pagan, while Jos. Scaliger, Fabricius,
come from Aurelius. But the edict is unques- Funccius, and later M. Ampere, uphold the
tionably spurious, and merely shows the wish contrary view. Without assenting to the
of some Christians, at a later stage in the con- extreme opinion of Trithemius, who even
flict, to claim the authority of the philosopher makes him out to have held the see of Bor-
in favour of his brethren. (2) There is the deaux, we may safely pronounce in favour of
decree mentioned by Eusebius (H. E. v. 5) on his Christianity. The negative view rests
the authority of TertuUian (^/>oi. c. 5, ad Scap. purely upon assumptions, such as that a
c. 4, p. 208) and appended to Justin's first Christian would not have been guilty of the
Apology, which purports to be addressed to the grossness with which some of his poems are
Senate, informing them how, when he and his stained, nor have been on such intimate terms
army were in danger of perishing for want of with prominent heathens (Symmach. Epp. ad
water in the country of the Marcomanni, the Auson. passim), nor have alluded so constantly
Christians in his army had prayed to their to pagan rites and mythology without some
God, and refreshing rain bad fallen for them, expression of disbelief. On the other hand,
and a destroying hail on their enemies, and he was not only appointed tutor to the Chris-
bidding them therefore to refrain from all tian son of a Christian emperor, whom he
accusations against Christians as such, and seems at any rate to have instructed in the
ordering all who so accused them to be burnt Christian doctrine of prayer (Grat. Act. 43) ;

alive. (Cf. Thundering Legion in D. C. B. but certain of his poems testify distinctly to
4-V0I. ed.) The decree is manifestly spurious. his Christianity in language that is only to be
An interesting moaograph, M. Aurelius An- set aside by assuming the poems themselves
toninus als Freund und Zeitgenosse des Rabbis to be spurious. Such are (i) the first of his
Jehudas ben Nasi, by Dr. A. Bodek (Leipz. idylls, entitled Versus Paschales, and com-
1868), maybe noticed as maintaining that this mencing Sancta salutiferi redeunt solemnia
emperor is identical with the Antoninus ben Christi, the genuineness of which is proved by
Ahasuerus, who is mentioned in the Talmud a short prose address to the reader connecting
as on terms of intimacy with one of the it with the next idyll, the Epicedion, inscribed
leading Jewish teachers of the time. If this to his father. (2) The Ephemeris, an account
be accepted, it suggests another possible of the author's mode of spending his day,
element in his scorn of Christianity. G. H. which contains not merely an allusion to the
Rendal, Marcus Aurelius Antoninus, to Him- chapel in which his morning devotions were
self, Eng. trans, with valuable Intro. (Lond. performed (I. 7), but a distinct confession of
1898). [E.H.P.] faith, in the form of a prayer to the first two
Ausonius, Decimus Magnus, a native of Persons of the Trinity. (3) The letters of the
Bordeaux, was the son of Julius Ausonius, a poet to his friend and former pupil St. Paulin-
physician of Cossium (Bazas), in Aquitania us of Nola, when the latter had forsaken the
(Aus. Idyll, ii. 2). His poems, which are service of the pagan Muses for the life of a
singularly communicative as to his private Christian recluse. This correspondence, so far
history, display him to us in riper years both from being evidence that he was a heathen
as student and courtier, professor and prefect, (see Cave, etc.), displays him to us rather as a
poet and consul. At the age of 30 he was Christian by conviction, still clinging to the
promoted to the chair of rhetoric in his native pagan associations of his youth, and incapable
city, and not long after was invited to court of understanding a truth which had revealed
by the then Christian emperor Valentinian I., itself to his friend, that Christianity was
who appointed him tutor to his son Gratian not merely a creed but a life. The letters
(Praef. ad Syagr. 15-26). Ausonius was held are a beautiful instance of wounded but not
96 AVITUS, ALCIMUS ECDICIUS AVITUS, ALCIMUS ECDICIUS
embittered affection on the one side, and of the important part he was called to play in the
an attachment almost fihal tempered by firm controversies of his time. In 499 Vienne
religious principle on the other. Paulinas was captured by Gundobald, king of the
nowhere chides Ausonius for his paganism ;
Burgundians, who was at war with Clovis,
on the contrary, he assumes his Christianity king of the Franks and Avitus, as metro-
;

(Paulin. Ep. ii. i8, 19), and this is still further politan of S. and E. Gaul, took the lead in
confirmed by a casual passage in one of the a conference between the Catholic and Arian
poet's letters to Paulinus, in which he speaks bishops held in presence of Gundobald at
of the necessity of returning to Bordeaux in Sardiniacum near Lyons (Greg. Turon., ii.
order to keep Easter [Ep. viii. 9). Ausonius 34). The king was convinced by the earnest
was not a Christian in the same sense as entreaties and powerful reasoning of Avitus,
Paulinus ;he was one who hovered on the who addressed several extant letters to him,
borderland which separated the new from but could never be induced to recant his
the old religion : not ashamed, it is true, to errors publicly. His successor Sigismund was
pen obscenities beneath the eye and at the converted by Avitus from Arianism.
challenge of his patron, yet in the quiet of his Avitus published treatises in confutation
oratory feeling after the God of the Christians ;
of the Nestorian, Eutychian, and Sabellian
convinced apparently of the dogma of the heresies he also wrote against the Pelagian
;

Trinity, yet so little penetrated by its awful errors of Faustus, abbot of Lerins, and con-
mystery as to give it a haphazard place in a verted many Jews who had settled in his
string of frivolous triplets composed at the diocese (Venant. Fortun. 1. v. c. 5).
dinner-table (Gryph. Tern. 87) :keenly alive to From a letter of pope Hormisdas to Avitus
natural beauty, and susceptible of the tender- {Ep. X.) we gather that he was made vicar
est affection, he yet fell short of appreciating apostolic in Gaul by that pontiff and in a.d. ;

in his disciple the more perfect beauty of 517 he presided in this capacity at the council^
holiness, and the entire abnegation of self for of Epaune (Concilium Epaonense) for the
the love of a divine master. Probably his restitution of ecclesiastical discipline in Nar-
later Christianity would have disowned his bonian Gaul. But his influence seems to have
own youthful productions. extended far beyond the limits of his own
The works of Ausonius comprise Epigram-
: diocese, as is shewn by his correspondence
maton Liber, a collection of 150 epigrams with several historical personages at Rome,
on all manner of subjects, political, moral, e.g. Faustus, Symmachus, Vitalianus, etc.
satirical, amatory many of which for terse-
; He appears also to have exerted himself to
ness and power of sarcasm are only sur- terminate the dispute between the churches
passed by those of Martial. Ephemeris (see of Rome and Constantinople which arose out
above). Parentalia, a series of tributes to the of the excommunication of Acacius that ;

memory of those of his family and kindred this was accomplished before his death we
who had died before him, many of which are gather from his letters {Epp. iii, vii.).
full of pathos. The Mosella is a poem in Avitus died Feb. 5, 523, and was buried in
praise of his favourite river. The Epistolae the monastery of St. Peter and St. Paul at
are, on the whole, the most interesting, be- Vienne, where the greater part of his youth
cause the most heartfelt, of the works of had been spent.
Ausonius ; they number 25, addressed to The extant works of St. Avitus are as
various friends. Those to St. Paulinus of follows : A
poem in five books on subjects
Nola prove that the poet was capable of drawn from Genesis and Exodus de Origine :

earnestness when his heart was stirred. Mundi ; de Peccato Originali ; de Sententia
The works of Ausonius are published in Dei ; de Diluvio ; de Transitu Maris Rubri,
Migne's Pair. Lat. vol. xix. There is a com- this is dedicated to his brother ApoUinaris,
plete ed. by R. Peiper (Leipz. 1886) ;H. de and consists of 2611 hexameter lines. The
la V. de Mirmont, Mosella, with trans. (Bor- first three books might almost have suggested
deaux, 1889); also de Mosella (Paris, 1892); the idea of Milton's Paradise Lost, to which
Dill, Roman Society (Lond. 1898). [e.m.y.] they bear a curious and in many points
AvitUS, Alcimus Ecdicius, archbp. of Vienne interesting analogy. A collection of 91
in Narbonian (laul born about the middle
; letters, several of historical interest, especially
of 5th cent. His father belonged to a family that addressed to Clovis {Ep. xli.) upon his
of senatorial rank. His mother, Audentia, baptism. A homily, de Festo Rogationum,
was, in all probability, a sister of M. Maecilius from which the religious observance of Roga-
AvitUS, emperor of the West, a.d. 456. The tion days took its origin. [Mamertus.] A
mother of Sidonius ApoUinaris the poet, who, second homily representing the Rogation of
in a letter to Alcimus Avitus, speaks of their the third day, which was discovered in the
near relationship and the identity of their library of the Grande Chartreuse, and first
youthful pursuits, seems to have been another published in 1717 by Dom Marten {Thesaur.
sister of the same illustrious family (Sidon. Anecd. p. 47). A homily preached on the
Apoll. Ep. iii. I, 61). A student's life at- occasion of the dedication of a church erected
tracted AvitUS more than did wealth and rank, by Maximus, bp. of Geneva. Seventy-two
and at an early age he bestowed his patrimony short fragments of homilies, sermons, etc.
upon the poor and retired into the seclusion The Collatio Episcoporum contra .irianos coram
of a monastery close to the walls of his native Gundobaldo rege, first published in d'Achery's
city. Here he gained so high a reputation for Spicilegium, 1635 ff. (tom. iii. p. 304, ed. Paris,
piety and learning that in 490 a.d., upon the 1725). These remains contain much that is
death of his father, he was elected to succeed valuable with reference to the history, doc-
him in the archbishopric. The fame of Avitus trine, and discipline of the church in the 5th
rests partly upon his poetry and partly upon cent. The works of Avitus are contained
^ABYLAS BARDAISAN 07
in Migne's Patrologia, vol. lix. Oeitvres, ed. memorated by Gennadius (c. 24), who attri-
N. ChevaUier (Lyons, 1890). [e.m.y.] butes to him several works, only one of which

he acknowledges to have read viz. the Lihellus
de Fide Apolngeticus, to satisfy the bp. of Rome
of his orthodoxy, who regarded him with
Babylas (1), bp. of Antioch from a.d. 237 suspicion on account of his being a native of
or 238 until his martyrdom, a.d. 250 or 251, a country tainted with heresy. What this
under Decius, either by death in prison for the country was there is nothing in his Ltbellus to
faith (Eus. H. E. vi. 39), or by direct violence determine. Bachiarius's profession of faith
(St. Chrys. deSt. Bab. c. Gentes, torn, i.) other is thoroughly orthodox in all leading points.
authorities — ;

Epiphanius (deMens.xvin.), Sozo- Its date is fixed appro.ximately at about the


men (v. 19), Theodoret (H. E. iii. 6)— simply middle of the 5th cent., by his denial of the
calling him mart}T, while St. Jerome {de Scriptt. tenets of Origen regarding the soul and the
Eccl. liv. Ixii.) gives both accounts in different resurrection life, and those of Helvidius on the
places. The Acta of Babylas (Acta SS. Jan. perpetual virginity of the Virgin (§ 3, 4), and
24), place his martyrdom under Numerian, by by his omission of the Son when speaking of
a confusion(according to Baronius's conjecture, the procession of the Holy Ghost. This con-
ad ann. 253, § 126) with one Numerius, who fession is an interesting document, and will
was an active officer in the Decian persecution repay perusal. It was first printed by Mura-
(Tillemont, M. E. iii. 729). The great act of tori (Anecd. Latin, ii. 939). He also wrote ad
his life was the compelling the emperor Philip, Jannarium Liber de Reparatione Lapsi in
when at Antioch shortly after the murder of behalf of a monk whom Januarius had ex-
Gordian, to place himself in the ranks of the pelled from the monastery of which he was the
penitents, and undergo penance, before he was head for immorality with a nun. He rebukes
admitted to church privileges (Kar^x" ^0705, Januarius and his monks for refusing to
according to Eus. H. E. vi. 34, but asserted receive the monk again on his penitence.
without qualification by St. Chrysostom, as Bachiarius has been confused by Cave, Bale,
above, while the V. St. Chrys. in Acta SS. Sept. and others with Mochta, a disciple of St.
tom. iv. 439, transfers the story, against all Patrick. Tillemont, xvi. 473-476 Cave, Hist.
;

probability, to Decius, and assigns it as the Lit. i. 429. [e.v.]


cause of St. Babylas's martyrdom). But his Bardaisan (Bardesancs). A Syrian theo-
fame has arisen principally from the triumph 1 logian, commonly reckoned among Gnostics,
of his relics after his death over another Born at Edessa a.d. 155, and died there a.d.
emperor, viz. Julian the Apostate, a.d. 362. 222-223. His theology as known to us is
The oracle of Apollo at Daphne, it seems, was doubtless a mere fraction of his actual theo-
rendered dumb by the near vicinity of St. logy. His reception of the Pentateuch, which
Babylas's tomb and church, to which his body he seemed to contradict, is expressly attested,
had been translated by Gallus, a.d. 351. And and there is no reason to suppose that he
Julian in consequence, when at Antioch, rejected the ordinary faith of Christians as
ordered the Christians to remove his shrine founded on the Gospels and the writings of
(\apvaKa), or rather (according to Amm. the apostles, except on isolated points. The
Marcell. xxii.), to take away all the bodies more startling peculiarities of which we hear
buried in that locality. A
crowded procession belong for the most part to an outer region
of Christians, accordingly, excited to a pitch of speculation, which it may easily have
of savage enthusiasm characteristic of the seemed possible to combine with Christianity,
Antiochenes, bore his relics to a church in more especially with the undeveloped Chris-
Antioch, the whole city turning out to meet tianit)' of Syria in the 3rd cent. The local
them, and the bearers and their train tumul- colour is everywhere prominent. In passing
tuously psalms the whole way, over to the new faith, Bardaisan could not
chanting
especially those which denounce idolatry. On shake off the ancient glamour of the stars,
the same night, by a coincidence which Julian or abjure the Semitic love of clothing
strove to explain away by referring it to thoughts in mythological forms. Scarcely
Christian malice or to the neglect of the anything survives of his writings, for a Dia-
heathen priests,, the temple of Apollo was logue concerning Fate, extant in Syriac
struck by lightning and burned, with the great under the title " Book of the Laws of the
idol of Apollo itself. Whereupon Julian in Countries," is by his disciple Philip. The 56
revenge both punished the priests and closed Hymns of Ephrem Syrus against Heresies are
the great church at Antioch (Julian Imp. intended to refute the doctrines of Marcion,
Misopog. 0pp. ii. 97 (Paris, 1630); St. Chrys. Bardaisan, and Mani, but Ephrem's criticism
Horn, de St. Bab. c. Gent, and Horn, de St. Bab. is harsh and unintelligent.
;
On the whole,
Theod. de Cur. Graec. Affect, x. and H. E. iii. whatever might have come to Bardaisan
6, 7 Socr. iii. 13
; Soz. v. 19, 20
; Rufin. x. through Valentinianism might as easily have
;

35 ; Amm.
Marcell. xxii. pp. 225, 226). St. come to him directly from the traditions of his
Chrysostom also quotes a lamentable oration race, and both alternatives are admissible.
of the heathen sophist Libanius upon the event. It is on any supposition a singular fact that
The relics of St. Babylas were subsequently the remains of his theology disclose no traces
removed once more to a church built for them of the deeper thoughts which moved the
on the other side of the Orontes (St. Chrys. Gnostic leaders. That he held a doctrinal
Horn, de St. Bab. Soz. vii. 10).
; [a.w.h.] position intermediate between them and the
Bachiarius, a monk, early in the 5th cent., church Is consistent with the circumstances of
author of two short treatises printed in the his life, but is not supported by any internal
Biblioth. Vet. Patr. of Galland, vol. ix. and the evidence. On this, as on many other points,
Patrologia of Migue, vol. xx. He is com- we can only deplore our ignorance about a
7
;

98 BARNABAS, EPISTLE OF BARNABAS, EPISTLE OF


person of singular interest. (From H. in—
D. C. B. 4-vol. ed. cf. Bardenhewer, p. 78.)
John, si illorum essent recepta essent ab ecclesia,
show that our epistle would have been placed
;


Barnabas, Epistle of. I- Authenticity. Is — in the canon had it been deemed authentic
this epistle the production of the Barnabas so for Andrew and John were apostles, Barnabas
often associated with St. Paul or has it been
; was not. The second, that Barnabas had died
falsely connected with his name ? The ques- before the destruction of Jerusalem, while the
tion is one of deep interest, bearing on the epistle bears clear marks of not having been
historical and critical spirit of the early Chris- written until after that date for this idea is
;

tian church. no just inference from the texts referred to.


It is admitted on sides that the external
all Col. iv. 10, I Pet. V. 13, 2 Tim. iii. (iv. ?) 11,
evidence is decidedly in favour of the idea that and the authority of a monk of the 6th or
the epistle is authentic. Clement of Alex- 9th cent, is not to be relied on. The third,
andria bears witness to it as the work of that the apostles chosen by our Lord are
" Barnabas the apostle " —
" Barnabas who described in c. v. as iiirkp wdcrav d/j-apriav
was one of the seventy disciples and the for these words are simply intro-
fellow-labourer of Paul "

" Barnabas who
dvo/xibrepoi ;

duced to magnify the grace of Christ in calling


also preached the Gospel along with the not the righteous but sinners to repentance.
apostle according to the dispensation of the It was an undoubted fact that the Saviour had
Gentiles " (Strom, ii. 7, 35 ii. 20, 116
; v. 10,
; associated with publicans and sinners, and
64. Cf. also ii. 6, 31 ii. 15, 67
; ii. 18, 84
; Barnabas may mean no more than that out of
;

V. 8, 52). The same may be said of Origen, that class were the apostles chosen. He may
who speaks of it as " the Catholic Ep. of even have had the career of Saul previous to
Barnabas " (c. Cels. i. 63). Eusebius disputes his call to the apostleship mainly in view. The
its canonicity, but is hardly less decided fourth argument of Hefele, that the epistle be-
in favour of its authenticity. It is included trays in c. X. so much ignorance of the habits
by him at one time among the disputed, at of various animals, is not valid for natural'"
;

another among the spurious books yet there


;
history was then but little known. The fifth
is no reason to doubt that when, in both pas- argument of the same writer to be set aside
sages, he calls it the Ep. of Barnabas, he under- is that Barnabas, who had travelled in
stands not an unknown person of that name Asia Minor, and lived at Antioch in Syria,
but the Barnabas of Scripture (vi. 14, iii. 25). could not have asserted in c. ix. that the
Jerome must be understood to refer to it when Syrians were circumcised, when we knov/ from
he tells us of an Ep. read among the apocry- Josephus (contr. Ap. i. 22 Antiq. viii. 10, 3)
;

phal books, and written by Barnabas of that they were not for, however frequently
;

Cyprus, who was ordained along with Paul this statement has been repeated, Josephus
the Apostle of the Gentiles [de Vir. III. c. vi.). says nothing of the kind. What he says is,
In the Stichomeiria of Nicephorus, in the 5 th that a remark of Herodotus, to the effect that
cent., it is enumerated among the uncanonical the Syrians who live in Palestine are circum-
books ; and, at the close of that cent., a cised, proves that historian's acquaintance
similar place is assigned to it by Anastasius with the Jews, because the Jews were the only
Sinaita. Since it is, moreover, found in inhabitants of Palestine by whom that rite
Codex S attached to the books of N.T., there was practised, and it must have been of them,
is no doubt the early Christian church con- therefore, that he was speaking, and he quotes
sidered it authentic. That she refused to allow Herodotus, and without any word of dissent,
its canonicity is little to the purpose. The very as saying that the Syrians about the rivers
fact that many thought it entitled to a place Thermodon and Parthenius, that is in the
in the canon i? a conclusive proof of the opinion northern parts of Syria, did submit to circum-
that had been formed of its authorship. The cision. He may thus be even said to confirm
early Church drew a line between apostles and the statement of our epistle.
companions of apostles and, although writ-
; The three remaining arguments of Hefele
ings of the latter, such as the Gospels of are more important.
St. Mark and St. Luke, and the Ep. to the (i) That the many trifling allegories of cc.
Hebrews, were received into the canon, the v.-xi. are unworthy of one who was named the
connexion between the writers of these books " Son of Consolation." It is true that it is
and one or other of the apostles was believed difficult to conceive how such a one could find
to be such that the authority of the latter in the numeral letters of the Greek version of
could be transferred to the former. Such a the O.T. an indication of the will of Him Who
transference would be more difficult in the had given that Testament in Hebrew to His
case of Barnabas, because, although associ- ancient people. Yet, after all, is it not the
ated at one time with St. Paul in his labours, time rather than the writer that is here in
the two had differed in opinion and separated. fault ? It is unfair to take as our standard of
It is on internal evidence that many dis- judgment the principles of interpretation just
tinguished critics have denied its authenticity. now prevailing. We must transfer ourselves
That there is great force in some at least of into the early Christian age, and remember the
the arguments adduced by them from this spirit of interpretation that then prevailed.
source it is impossible to deny, yet they do We must call to mind the allegorical explana-
not seem so irresistible as to forbid renewed tions of both Jewish and heathen schools,
consideration. They have been summed up whose influence passed largely into the Christ-
by Hefele (Patr. Apost. p. 14), and succeeding ian church. Above all, we must think of the
writers have added little to his statement. estimation in which the epistle was held for
Of his eight arguments, five may be at once centiuries, e.g. by Clement and Origen that ;

rejected : The first, that the words of Augus- some would have assigned it a place in the
tine regarding the Apocrj^ha of Andrew and canon ; and that, even by those who denied
;

BARNABAS, EPISTLE OP BARNABAS, EPISTLE OP 99

it that place, it was regarded as a most useful been previously a decided one, " insomuch
and edifying work. In judging, therefore, of that even Barnabas was carried away by their
the ability of our author, we must turn from dissimulation." The incident may also have
the form to the substance of his argument, made him in time to come ashamed of his
from the shell in which he encloses his kernel weakness, firmer and more determined than
of truth to that truth itself. When we do so before.
his epistle will appear in no small degree To sum up the evidence, it seems to the
worthy of approbation. It exhibits a high present writer that its balance favours its
appreciation of many of the cardinal truths of composition by Barnabas more than critics
Christianity, of the incarnation and death of have been generally willing to allow. The
Christ, of the practical aims of the Gospel, bearing of the external evidence upon this
of the freedom and spirituality of Christian result is unquestionable and, where we have
;

living ;while the general conception of the such evidence, it is a sound principle that
relation of the N. T. to the Old, although in nothing but the strongest internal evidence
some respects grievously at fault, embodies should be permitted to overcome it. The
the important principle that the Old is but the traditions of the early church with regard to
shadow of the New, and that " the testimony historical facts do not appear to have been
of Jesus is the spirit of prophecy." Through- so loose as is often alleged. It is difficult
out the epistle there are many sentences of also to imagine how a generally accepted and
great beauty and warmth of Cliristian feeling, firmly held tradition could arise without some
and the description of the rebuilding of the really good foundation.
spiritual temple in c. xvi. is most eloquent. Finally, we are too prone to forget that the
(2) Against its authenticity are urged, next, substance of Christian truth may be held by
the numerous mistakes committed by the others in connexion with misapprehensions,
writer in cc. vii. viii. with regard to the rites imperfections, misinterpretations, of Scrip-
and ceremonies of Judaism, mistakes to all ture, absurd and foolish views, in connexion
appearance inconsistent with the idea tliat he with which it would be wholly impossible for
could be a Jew, a Levite, who had lived long us to hold it. The authorship of Barnabas is
in Jerusalem, and must have been acquainted rejected by, among others, Neander, Ullman,
with the ceremonial institutions of the Jews. Hug, Baur, Hefele, Winer, Hilgenfeld, Donald-
It is impossible not to feel the great force of son, Westcott, Miihler, while it is maintained
the objection, or even to complain of one who, by Gieseler, Credner, Guericke, Bleek, Mohler,
upon this ground alone, should reject the and, though with hesitation, De Wette. [The
authorship of Barnabas. Let it only be weighty judgment of bp. Lightfoot must now
remembered that these mistakes are almost (1911) be added to the list in favour, and
equally inexpUcable on the supposition that will generally be considered as decisive see :

the author was not Barnabas. If such rites Apost. Fathers, pt. i. vol. ii. pp. 503-512.]
were not actually practised, whence did he II. The Dale of the Epistle. —
External evi-
learn their supposed existence ? It is out of dence does not help us here. We are thrown
the question to think that they were a mere wholly upon the internal. Two
are limits
fancy of his own. And how came the great allowed by all, the destruction of Jerusalem
Fathers whose names have been already men- on the one hand, and the time of Clement of
tioned, how came the church at large, to value —
Alexandria on the other that is, from a.d. 70
the epistle as it did if in the mention of them to the last years of the 2nd cent. Betweea
we have nothing but absurdity and error ? these two limits the most various dates have
We are hardly less puzzled to account for such been assigned to it the
; general opinion, how-
inaccuracies if the writer was an Alexandrian ever, being that it is not to be placed earlier
Christian of heathen origin than if he were a than towards the close of the ist, nor later
Jew and a Levite. than early in the 2nd cent. Most probably
(3) The third and important argument
last it was written only a very few years after the

adduced by Hefele founded upon the unjust


is destruction of Jerusalem.
notions with regard to Judaism which are III. Object of the Epistle, and Line of Argu-
presented in our epistle. They are correctly —
ment pursued in it. Two points are especially
so described. But it is not so clear that they insisted on by the writer first, that Judaism,
:

might not have been entertained by one who, in its outward and fleshly form, had never
educated in the school of St. Paul and ani- been commended by the Almighty to man,
mated by a high sense of the spirituality and had never been the expression of God's cove-
universality of the Christian faith, would be nant secondly, that that covenant had never
;

easily led, in the heat of the Judaic contro- belonged to the Jews at all.
versies of his day, to depreciate a system which In carrying out his argument upon the first
was threatening to overthrow the distinctive- point, the writer everywhere proceeds on the
ness and power of the Gospel of Christ. idea that the worship which God requires,
To these arguments recent writers have which alone corresponds to His nature, and
added that the strong anti-Judaistic tendency which therefore can alone please Him, is
of the epistle is inconsistent with its ascrip- spiritual, not a worship of rites and ceremon-
tion to Barnabas, inasmuch as he erred in too ies, of places and seasons, but a worship of the
great attachment to the Jewish party (Gal. heart and life. It is not by sacrifices and
ii. 13).But the incident thus referred to oblations that we approach God, Who will
reveals no such trait in the character of Bar- have no offerings thus made by man * (c. ii.)
nabas. His conduct on that occasion was a it is not by keeping sabbaths that we honour
momentary weakness by which the best may • The reading of Codex {< is to be preferred to
be overtaken and it rather shews us that his
;
that of the Latin, ii'a 6 /caii/bs . )j.>)
. . avBpuinoiriTov
position on the side of the freer party bad «XTI
''')*' ^po(T<l>opa.v. For the sense cf Matt. xv. 9.
.
100 BARNABAS, EPISTLE OF BARNABAS, EPISTLE OF
Him (c. XV.) nor is it in any temple made
; stillattach, to outward rites they prove that
with hands that He is to be found (c. xvi.). they have never entered into the mind of God ;

The true helpers of our faith are not such that they are the miserable victims of the wiles
things, but fear, patience, long-suffering, of Satan (cc. iv. ix. xvi.). But the same thing
continence and the " way of light " is found
; is shewn both by Scripture and by fact by —
wholly in the exhibition of moral and spiritual Scripture, for in the cases of the children of
virtues (c. xix.). But how was it possible to Rebekah, and of the blessing of Ephraim and
reconcile with such an idea the facts of history? Manasseh, we learn that the last shall be first
Judaism had had, in time past, and still had, and the first last (c. xiii.) by fact, for when ;

an actual existence. Its fasts and sacrifices, Moses broke the two tables of stone on his
its sabbaths and temple, seemed to have been way down from the mount, the covenant
ordained by God Himself. How could it be which was at that moment about to be
pleaded that these things were not the ex- bestowed upon Israel was dissolved and trans-
pression of God's covenant, were not to be ferred to Christians (c. xiv.).
always binding and honoured ? It is to the This line of argument clearly indicates what
manner in which such questions are answered was the special object of the epistle, the
that the peculiar interest in our epistle be- special danger against which it was designed
longs. They are not answered as they would to guard. It was no mere Judaizing tendency
have been by St. Paul. The Apostle of the that was threatening the readers for whom it
Gentiles recognized the value of Judaism and was intended. It was a tendency to lapse
of all the institutions of the law as a great into Judaism itself. The argument of those
preparatory discipline for the coming of the who were endeavouring to seduce them was,
Messiah, as " a schoolmaster to bring us unto " The covenant is ours " (c. iv.).* These men,
Christ." There is nothing of this kind in theas appears from the tenor of the whole chapter,
argument of Barnabas. Judaism has in it must have been Jews, and their statement
nothing preparatory, nothing disciplinary, in could have no other meaning than that Juda-^
the sense of training men for higher truths. ism, as the Jews understood and lived it, was
It has two aspects —
the one outward and God's covenant, that it was to be preferred to
carnal, the other inward and spiritual. The
Christianity, and that the observance of its
first was never intended by God they who rites and ceremonies was the true divine life
;

satisfy themselves with it are rather deceived to which men ought to be called. Yet
by " an evil angel." The second is Christian- Christians were shewing a disposition to listen
ity itself, Christianity before Christ (c. ix. to such teaching, and many of them were
and passim). This view of the matter is running the serious risk of being shattered
made good partly by shewing that, side by against the Jewish law (c. iii.).t With this
side with the institutions of Israel, there were the errors of a coarsely Judaistic life naturally
many passages of the Prophets in which God connected themselves, together with those
even condemned in strong language the out- many sins of the " evil way " in which, when
ward ceremony, whether sacrifice, or fasting, we take the details given of them in c. xx.,
or circumcision, or the temple worship (cc. we can hardly fail to recognize the old features
ii. iii. ix. xvi.) that these things, in their
; of Pharisaism. In short, those to whom
formal meaning, were positively rejected by Barnabas writes are in danger of falling away
Him and that the most important of them
; from Christian faith altogether or, if not in ;

all, circumcision, was fully as much a heathen actual danger of this, they have to contend
as a divine rite (c. ix.). This line of argument, with those who are striving to bring about
however, is not that upon which the writer such a result, who are exalting the ancient
mainly depends. His chief trust is in the oeconomy, boasting of Israel's nearness to
yvQaii, that deeper, that typical and alle- God, and praising the legal offerings and
gorical, method of interpreting Scripture fastings of the O.T. as the true way by which
which proceeded upon the principle that the the Almighty is to be approached. It is the
letter was a mere shell, and had never been spirit of a Pharisaic self-righteousness in the
intended to be understood literally. By the strictest sense of the words, not of a Judaizing
application of this principle the whole actual Christianity, that is before us. Here is at
history of Israel loses its validity as history, once an explanation of all the most peculiar
and we see as the true meaning of its facts phenomena of our epistle, of its polemical
nothing but Christ, His cross. His covenant, zealpointed so directly against Judaism that,
and the spiritual life to which He summons as Weizacker has observed, it might seem to
His disciples. It is unnecessary to give illus-
* The <J5 1)^1) &cBiKaLioixiiw of c. iv. has led
trations. What is said of Moses, that he Hilgenfeld {die A post. Voter, p. 38) to think of those
spoke iv Ttv(Vfj.aTt, is evidently to be applied who were turning the grace of God into lasciviousness.
to the whole O. T. The literal meaning is But the whole passage leads rather to the thought of a
nowhere what was really intended. The proud Judaic self-righteousness, " the temple of the
Almighty had always had a deeper meaning L,ord, the temple of the L,ord are we."
\ "Iva. ^1) nporrtp^ui^eBa u>? errTjAurat toj eKcCviov
in what was said. He had been always voixw. So Hilgenfeld reads, Nov. Test, extra
thinking, not of Judaism, but of Christ and Canonein but Codex Xi Trpoo-prjTO'wju.eSa '^'"^
M') ;

Christianity. The conclusion, therefore, could w? fTTiAi/T-M iKiUwv I'o.uM.


Tc5 Tlie passagc is
not be mistaken ;
Judaism in its outward and almost unintelligible. Weizacker proposes to read
carnal form had never been the expression of «mA.vTU) and to render
; by means of 2 Pet.i. 20, which
God's covenant. To whom, then, does God's is utterly untenable. Might we suggest that eTriAvroi
covenant belong ? It is indeed a legitimate may here be used in the sense of " set loose," the
figure being that of persons or things loosened from
conclusion from the previous argument that their true foundations or securities, and then dashed
the Jews cannot claim the covenant as theirs. against a wall, or perhaps against the beach, and thus
By the importance they always attached, and destroyed ?
BARSUMAS BASILIDES 101

be directed as much against Jews as against espoused the cause of Eutyches. When, in
Judaizers * of its
; effort to shew that the 448, Eutyches was denounced before the local
whole O. T. cultus had its meaning only in synod of Constantinople, Barsumas, who was
Christ ;of its denial of all value to outward resident in the city, raised a violent opposition
Judaism ; of its aim to prove that the inward to the Eastern bishops. The next year, 449,
meaning of that ancient faith was really at the " Robbers' Synod " of Ephesus, Theo-
Christian ; of its exclusion of Jews, as such, dosius II. summoned Barsumas as the repre-
from all part in God's covenant ; and of its sentative of the malcontent monastic party,
dwelling precisely upon those doctrines of the and granted him a seat and vote among the
Christian faith which were the greatest bishops. He was the first monk allowed to
stumbling-block to the Jewish mind, and those act as a judge at a general council. Barsumas
graces of the Christian life to the importance brought with him a turbulent band of 1000
of which it had most need to be awakened. monks to coerce the assembly, and took a
IV. Authorities for the Text. —
These consist prominent part in the disorderly proceedings,
of MSS. of the Greek text, of the old Latin vociferously expressing his joy on the acquiital
version, and of citations in early Christian of Eutyches and joining in the assault on the
writings. The MSS. are tolerably numerous, aged Flavian by the monks and soldiers. The
but the fact that, except the Sinaiticus (X), injuries inflicted were so serious that the
which deserves separate mention, they all lack venerable patriarch died three days after-
exactly the same portion of the epistle, the wards. When with great effrontery Barsumas
first five and a half chapters, seems to shew presented himself at the council of Chalcedon,
that they had been taken from a common 451, an outcry was raised against him as " the
source and cannot be reckoned as independent murderer of the blessed Flavian." He active-
witnesses. Since the discovery of Codex N ly propagated Eutychian doctrines in Syria
by Tischendorf a new era in the construction and died 458. His disciple, Samuel, carried
of the text has begun. Besides bringing to Eutychianism into Armenia. He is regarded
light the portion previously wanting, valuable among the Jacobites as a saint and worker of
readings were suggested by it throughout, and miracles (Assemani, Bibl. Orient, ii. 4 Labbe, ;

it is now our chief authority for the text. The iv. 103 seq. ; Liberatus, c. 12 ; Tillemont,
old Latin version is of high value. The MS. XV. ; Schrockh, xvii. 451 seq.). [e.v.]
from which it is taken is probably as old as Barsumas (the Nestorian), bp. of Nisi bis
the 8th cent., but the translation itself is and metropolitan, 435-489, who, after the
supposed by MiJUer to have been made from suppression of Nestorianism within the em-
a text older even than that of Codex N. Itpire, engaged successfully in its propagation
wants the last 4 chapters of the epistle. Cita- in Eastern Asia, especially in Persia. Ban-
tions in early Christian writings are extensive. ished from Edessa by Rabulas, after his
Editions and Literature. —
Valuable editions desertion of his former friends, Barsumas
are those of Hefele, 1855 (4th ed.) Dressel,
; proved the chief strength and wisdom of the
1863 ; Hilgenfeld, 1866 and Miiller, 1869.
; fugitive church. In 435 he became bp. of
Dressel was the first to make use of Codex N, Nisibis, where, in conjunction with Maanes,
but of aU these editors Miiller seems to have bp. of Hardaschir, he established a theological
constructed his text upon the most thoroughly school of deserved celebrity, over which Narses
scientific principles. The literature is very presided for fifty years. Barsumas had the
extensive. Notices of the Epistle will be skill to secure for his church the powerful
found in the writings of Dorner, Baur, Schweg- support of the Persian king Pherozes (Firuz),
ler, Ritschl, Lechler, Reuss, and others. The who ascended the throne in the year 462. He
following monographs are especially worthy worked upon his enmity to the Roman power
of notice ; Hefele, Das Sendschreiben des to obtain his patronage for a development of
Apostels Barnabas aufs neue untersucht, iiber- doctrine whicli had been formally condemned
setzt und erkldrt (Tubingen, 1840) Hilgenfeld by the emperor and his assembled bishops,
;

in his Die Apostolischen Vdter (Halle, 1853) representing to him that the king of Persia
;

Weizacker, Zur Kritik des Barnabasbriefes aus could never securely reckon on the allegiance
dem Codex Sinaiticus (Tiibingen, 1863) J. G. of his subjects so long as they held the same
;

Mijller's Erkldrung des Barnabasbriefes, Bin religious faith with his enemies. Pherozes
Anhang zu de Wette's Exegetischem Handbuch admitted the force of this argument, and
zum neuen Testament (Leipz. 1869), contains Nestorianism became the only form of Christ-
general prolegomena to the epistle, a critically ianity tolerated in Persia. Barsumas died in
constructed text, .and an elaborate com- 489, in which year the emperor Zeno broke
mentary, together with careful Excursus on up the theological seminary at Edessa on
all the most important difficulties. W. account of its Nestorianism, with the result
Cunningham, A Dissertation on the Ep. of B. that it flourished still more at Nisibis. Mis-
(Lond. 1877). A trans, of the epistle is sionaries went out from it in great multitudes,
contained in the vol. of the Apost. Fathers in and Nestorianism became the recognized form
the A nte-Nicene Christian Lib. (T. & T. Clark, of Christianity in Eastern Asia. The Malabar
los. 6rf.). The ed. princeps by archbp. Ussher Christians are the lineal descendants of their
(Oxf. 1642) has been reprinted by the Clar- missions. Assemanni, Bibl. Or, iii. i, 16-70 ;

endon Press with a dissertation by J. H. Wigram, Hist, of Assyrian Ch. c. viii. [Nes-
Backhouse. The best text for English scholars torian Church.] [e.v.]
is given in Lightfoot, Apostolic Fathers, ed. by Basilides (BainXeiST??), the founder of one
bp. Harmer (Lond. 1891), pp. 237-242. [w.m.] of the semi-Christian sects, commonly called
Barsumas (the Eutychian), an archimand- Gnostic, which sprang up in the early part of
rite of a Syrian monastery, who warmly the 2nd cent.
* L.Q. pp. 5, 13. I. Biography. —
He called himself a disciple
,
:

102 BASILIDES BASILIDES


of one Glaucias, alleged to be an interpreter 145, he refers briefly {Ap. i. 26) to the founders
{fpfj.tjv^a) of St. Peter (Clem. Strom, vii. p. of heretical sects, naming first the earliest,
898). He taught at Alexandria (Iren. p. 100 Simon and Menander, followers of were whom
Mass. followed by Eus. H. E. iv. 7
; ;
Epiph. still alive and then apparently the latest,
;

Haer. xxiv. i, p. 68 c cf. xxiii. i, p. 62 b


; ;
Marcion, himself still alive. The probable
Theod. Haer. Fab. i. 2) Hippolytus {Haer.
:
inference that the other great heresiarchs,
vii. 27, p. 244) in general terms mentions including Basilides, were by this time dead
Egypt. Indeed Epiphanius enumerates receives some confirmation from a passage
various places in Egypt visited by Basilides ;
in his Dialogue against Trypho (c. 35), a later
but subsequently allows it to appear that his but probably not much later book, where the
knowledge of the districts where Basilidians " Maircians," Valentinians, Basilidians, Sat-
" and others," are enumerated,
existed in his own time was his only evidence. urnilians,
If the Alexandrian Gnostic is the Basilides apparently in inverse chronological order
quoted in the Acts of the Disputation of Arche- the growth of distinct and recognized sects
laus and Mani (c. 55, in Routh, Rell. Sac. v. implies at least the lapse of some time since
196 ;see later, p. 276), he was reported to the promulgation of their several creeds. It
have preached in Persia. Nothing more is seems therefore impossible to place Basilides
known of his life. According to Epiphanius later than Hadrian's time and, in the ab-
;

{62 B, 68 D, 69 a), he had been a feUow-disciple sence of any evidence to the contrary, we may
of Menander with Satiurnilus at Antioch in trust the Alexandrian Clement's statement
Syria; but this is evidently an arbitrary ex- that his peculiar teaching began at no earlier
tension of Irenaeus's remarks on the order of date.
doctrines to personal relations. If the view II. Writings. —
According to Agrippa Castor
of the doctrines of Basilides taken in this (Eus. H. E. I.e.), Basilides wrote " twenty-four
article is correct, they afford no good grounds books {(3ifi\la) on the Gospel." These are no
for supposing him to have had a Syrian educa- doubt the Exegetica, from the twenty-third o'f"
tion. Gnostic ideas derived originally from which Clement gives an extract {Strom, iv.
Syria were sufficiently current at Alexandria, §§ 83 ff., pp. 599 f.). The same work is doubt-
and the foundation of what is distinctive in less intended by the " treatises " {tractatuum)
his thoughts is Greek. the thirteenth book of which is cited in the
Several independent authorities indicate the Acta Archelai, if the same Basilides is referred
reign of Hadrian (a.d. 117- 138) as the time to. The authorship of an actual Gospel, of
when Basilides flourished. To prove that the the " apocryphal " class, is likewise attributed
heretical sects were " later than the Catholic to Basilides on plausible grounds. The word
church," Clement of Alexandria [I.e.) marks " taken in hand " {eirexelprjaav) in Luke i. i
out early Christian history into different gives Origen occasion to distinguish between
periods he assigns Christ's own teaching to
: the four evangelists, who wrote by inspiration,
the reigns of Augustus and Tiberius ; that of and other writers who " took in hand " to
the apostles, of St. Paul at least, ends, he says, produce Gospels. He mentions some of these,
in the time of Nero "
whereas the authors of
; and proceeds " Basilides had even the auda-
the sects arose later, about the times of the city " {tj5tj 5e tTdX/MTjaei', more than iirexf^PV^c)
emperor Hadrian (Kdnii 5e -mpl tovs k.t'K. " to write a Gospel according to Basilides " ;

ytydvacri), and continued quite as late as the that is, he went beyond other fabricators of
age of the elder Antoninus." He gives as ex- Gospels by affixing his own name {Horn, in
amples Basilides, Valentinus, and (if the text Liic. i.). This passage is freely translated,
is sound) Marcion, taking occasion by the way though without mention of Origen's name,
to throw doubts on the claims set up for the by Ambrose {Exp. in Luc. i. i) ; and is pro-
two former as having been instructed by bably Jerome's authority in an enumeration
younger contemporaries of St. Peter and St. of the chief apocryphal Gospels {Com. in
Paul respectively, by pointing out that about Matt, praef. t. vii. p. 3) for among the six
;

half a century lay between the death of Nero others which he mentions the four named by
and the accession of Hadrian. Again Eusebius Origen recur, including that of the Twelve
{I.e.) places Saturnilus and Basilides under Apostles, otherwise unknown (cf. Hieron.
Hadrian. Yet his language about Carpocrates Dial. cant. Pelag. iii. 2, t. ii. p. 782). Yet no
a few lines further on suggests a doubt whether trace of a Gospel by Basilides exists elsewhere ;

he had any better evidence than a fallacious and it seems most probable either that Origen
inference from their order in Irenaeus. He misunderstood the nature of the Exegetica, or
was acquainted with the refutation of Basilides that they were sometimes known under the
by Agrippa Castor but it is not clear, as is
;
other name (cf. Hilgenfeld, Clem. Rec. u.
sometimes assumed, that he meant to assign Horn. 123 ff.).
both writers to the same reign. His chronicle An interesting question remains, in what
(Armenian) at the year 17 of Hadrian (a.d. relation the Exegetica stand to the exposition
133) has the note " The heresiarch Basilides of doctrine which fills eight long chapters of
appeared at these times " which Jerome, as
;
Hippolytus. Basilides (or the Basilidians),
usual, expresses rather more definitely. A we are told (vii. 27), defined the Gospel as
"
similar statement without the year is repeated " the knowledge of supermundane things
by Jerome, de Vir. III. 21, where an old corrupt (7; Tibv inrfpKoai.ucov and the idea
yvwaLi), of
reading {mortnus for nioratus) led some of the the progress of " the Gospel " through the
earlier critics to suppose they had found a different orders of beings plays a leading part
limit for the date of Basilides's death. Theo- in the Basilidian doctrine (cc. 25 ff.). But
doret {I.e.) evidently follows Eusebius. Ear- there is not the slightest reason to think that
liest of all, but vaguest, is the testimony of the " Gospel " here spoken of was a substitute
Justin Martyr. Writing in or soon after a.d. for the Gospel in a historical sense, any more
BASILIDES BASILIDES 103
than in St. Paul's writings. Indeed several Our ultimate authorities therefore are Irenaeus
passages (p. 238, 1. 28 ff. ; 239, 42, 58 ; 240, (or the unknown author from he took whom
79 ff. of Miller), witti their allusions to Rom. this section of his work), the Compendium of
V. 14, viii. 19, 22, 23 ; I. Cor. ii. 13; II. Cor. Hippolytus (represented by Epiphanius [part],
xii. 4 ; Eph. i. 21, iii. 3, 5, 10, prove that the Philaster, and pseudo-Tertullian), Clement
writer was throughout thinking of St. Paul's and the Refutation of Hippolytus, together
" mystery of the Gospel." Hippolytus states with a short statement by Agrippa Castor,
distinctly that the Basilidian account of " all and probably a passing reference and quota-
things concerning the Saviour " subsequent to tion in the Acts of Archelaus.
" the birth of Jesus " agreed with that given It is now generally allowed that the notices
in " the Gospels." It may therefore be of Clement afford the surest criterion by which
reasonably conjectured that his exposition, if to test other authorities. Not only does his
founded on a work of Basilides himself (see whole tone imply exact personal knowledge,
§ III.), is a summary of the opening book or but be quotes a long passage directly from the
books of the Exegetica, describing that part Exegetica. Is then his account, taken as a
of the redemptive process, or of the prepara- whole, consistent with other accounts ? And
tion for it, which was above and antecedent does it agree best with the reports of Irenaeus
to the phenomenal life of Jesus. The com-
and Hippolytus in his younger days, or with
ments on the Gospel itself, probably containing the elaborate picture drawn by Hippolytus at
much ethical matter, as we may gather from a later time ? This second question has
Clement, would have little attraction for received opposite answers from recent critics.
Hippolytus. A majority have given the preference to
The certain fragments of the Exegetica have Hippolytus while Hilgenfeld (who three
;

been collected by Grabe (Spicil. Patr. ii. 35-43), years before, in his earliest book, the treatise
followed by Massuet and Stieren in their On the Clementine Homilies and Recognitions,
editions of Irenaeus but he passes over much pp. 125-149, had described the Basilidian
;

in Clement which assuredly has no other system from the then known records, en-
origin. A single sentence quoted in Origen's deavouring with perverse ingenuity to shew
commentary on Romans, and given further their virtual consistency with each other)
on (p. 275), is probably from the same source. has prided himself on not being dazzled by
In an obscure and brief fragment preserved in the new authority, whom he holds to be in
a Catena on Job (Venet. 1587, p. 345), Origen effect describing not Basilides but a late
implies the existence of Odes by Basilides and development of his sect and Lipsius takes ;

Valentinus. No other writings of Basilides the same view.


are mentioned. Itshould be observed at the outset that
III. Authenticity of the Hippolytean Extracts. the testimony of Clement is not quite so
— In endeavouring to form a clear conception homogeneous as is generally assumed. Six
of the work and doctrine of Basilides, we are times he criticises doctrines of " Basilides "
met at the outset by a serious difficulty. The himself eight
; times he employs the
different accounts were never easy to harmon- ambiguous pliural (01 airb B., 01 dfKpl tov B.).
ize, and some of the best critics of the first Are we to suppose a distinction here, or is
half of the 19th cent, considered them to refer the verbal difference accidental ? Both views
to two different systems of doctrine. But till might be maintained. The quotation from
1851 their fragmentary nature suggested that the Exegetica {Strom, iv. pp. 599 f.) is a piece
the apparent incongruities might conceivably of moral argument on Providence, wholly
be due only to the defects of our knowledge, free from the technical terms of Gnostic
and seemed to invite reconstructive boldness mythology. In the succeeding discussion
on the part of the historian. The publication Clement eventually uses plurals (et . . . tls
of Hippolytus's Refutation of all Heresies in
1 85 1 placed the whole question on a new
avTuiv \iyoi — avroli
ireirrcoKev 17 ws virddecris —
(pdvai, apparently a misreading for ws (paaiv
footing. Hardly any one has ventured to
maintain the possibility of reconciling its — d)s avToi \eyovaiv), which might equally
ample statements about Basilides with the imply that he employs both forms indifferent-
reports of Irenaeus and Epiphanius. Which ly, or that he distinguishes Basilides from his
account then most deserves our confidence ? followers within the limits of a single subject.
Before attempting to answer this question The other references to " Basilides " are like-
it is well to enumerate the authorities. They wise of a distinctly ethical character, while
are Agrippa Castor as cited by Eusebius, several of the passages containing the plural
Clement of Alexandria, Irenaeus, the name abound in technical language. Yet
anonymous supplement to TertuUian, de the distinction is not absolute on either side.
Praescriptione, tlie Refutation of Hippolytus, "Basilides" furnishes the terms "the
Epiphanius, Philaster, and Theodoret, and Ogdoad," " the election," " supermundane " ;

possibly the Acta Archelai, besides a few while such subjects as the nature of faith,
scattered notices which may be neglected here. the relation of the passions to the animal
This ample list shrinks, however, into small soul, and the meaning of Christ's saying about
dimensions at the touch of criticism. eunuchs, occur in the other group, though
Theodoret|s chapter is a disguised compilation they remind us rather of Basilides himself.
from previous Greek writers. The researches In the last passage, moreover (Strom, iii. pp.
of Lipsius have proved that Epiphanius 508 ff.), the ambiguous plural (ot dirb B. (t>a<j'L
followed partly Irenaeus, partly the lost — \^yov(TL —
^-qyovvTai
' —
<f)aai bis) is applied to
Compendium of Hippolytus, this same work a quotation intended to shame by contrast
being also the common soiurce of the Latin the immoral Basilidians of Clement's own
authors pseudo-TertuUian and Philaster. time ; and a similar quotation from Basi-
104 BASILIDES BASILIDES
lides's son Isidore immediately follows the ; (Strom, ii. p. 448) the utterance itself being
;

authors of the two quotations being designated implied to be a Gospel {€vriyy€\iaixivov) ; while
as " the forefathers of their (the late Basili- Hippolytus describes the same passage as
dians') doctrines." It is hard to believe that interpreted of the amazement of the Great
mere anonymous disciples, though of an earlier Archon on receiving " the Gospel," a revela-
date, would be appealed to in this manner, or tion of things unknown, through his Son, who
would take precedence of the master's own had received it from a " power " within the
son. On the whole, there can be no reasonable Holy Spirit (vii. 26). The coincidences are
doubt that all the doctrinal statements in thus proportionately great, and there are no
Clement concern Basilides himself, when not contradictions to balance them : so that it
distinctly otherwise expressed, and depend on would require strong evidence to rebut the
direct knowledge of the Exegetica. With good conclusion that Clement and Hippolytus had
reason therefore they may be assumed as a the same materials before them. Such evi-
trustworthy basis for the whole investigation. dence does not exist. The coincidences between
The most doubtful instances are the passages Clement and the Irenaean tradition are limited
cited presently on the Baptism and (in the to the widely spread " Ogdoad " and a single
Exc. Theod.) on the descent of the Minister disputable use of the word " Archon," and
(dLaKovos), i.e. the Holy Spirit. there is no similarity of doctrines to make up
The range of possible contact between the for the absence of verbal identity. The only
quotations and reports of Clement and any of tangible argument against the view that
the other authorities is not large. His extant Hippolytus describes the original system of
writings contain nothing like an attempt to Basilides is its Greek rather than Oriental
describe the Basilidian System. The Strom- character, which is assumed to be incom-
ates, which furnish the quotations from Basil- patible with the fundamental thoughts of a
ides, expressly limit themselves to moral and great Gnostic leader. We shall have other
practical questions (o tjOiko's X670J) ; and opportunities of inquiring how far the evidence
reserve for a future work, i.e. the lost Hy polyp- supports this wide generalization as to
oses, the exposition of the higher doctrine Gnosticism at large. As regards Basilides
(t^5 Kara T7)v iwovTiKTjv Oeiopiav )'vil><Te ill's. — personally, the only grounds for expecting
TT)v Tc^ ovri yvcoariKriv (pv(no\oylav)belonging from him an Oriental type of doctrine are the
to the department of knowledge which the
quotation in the Acts of Archelaus, which will
Stoics called Physics, beginning with the be discussed further on, and the tradition of
his connexion with Saturnilus of Antioch,
Creation and leading up to Theology proper
{Strom, i. p. 324 iv. pp. 563 f., 637 vi. pp.
which we have already seen to be founded on
;
a misconception. The fragmentary notices
;

735 f., 827 vii. 829, 902


; cf. Bunsen, Anal.
;

Antenic. i. 159 ff.). Now it is precisely to and extracts in Clement, admitted on all
this latter department that the bulk of Gnostic
hands to be authentic, are steeped in Greek
philosophy so that the Greek spirit of the
speculation would belong, and especially such ;

theories as Hippolytus ascribes to Basilides


Hippolytean representation is in fact an
;
additional evidence for its faithfulness.
and moreover Clement distinctly promises
It may yet be asked. Did Hippolytus con-
that in the course of that loftier investigation
sult the work of Basilides himself, or did he
he will " set forth in detail the doctrines of the
depend on an intermediate reporter ? His
heretics [tGiv erepodu^wv), and endeavour to
refute them to the best of his power" (iv.
own language, though not absolutely decisive,
favours the former alternative. On the one
§ 3. P- 564). We
have therefore no right to
hand it may be urged that he makes no
expect in the Stromales any cosmological or
mention of a book, that occasionally he quotes
even theological matter respecting Basilides
except such as may accidentally adhere to
by the words " they say," " according to
them," and that his exposition is immediately
the ethical statements, the subjects treated
" preceded by the remark, " Let us then see
of in the various books " against all heresies
being formally excluded by Clement. His
how openly both Basilides and [his son] Isi-
sphere being thus distinct from theirs, the dore B. o/iiov Kai 'I.) and the whole band of them
(

marked coincidences of language that we do not merely calumniate Matthias [from whom
find between him and Hippolytus afford a
they professed to have received records of
Christ's secret teaching], but also the Saviour
strong presumption that, if the one account
is authentic, the other is so likewise. Within Himself " (c. 20). Against these indications
the narrow limits of Clement's information we may be set the ten places where Basilides is
" referred to singly, and the very numerous
meet with the phrases primitive medley and
quotations by the words " he says." It is
confusion " {<Tvyxi'<ns), and on the other hand
" separation " (differentiation) and restora- true that Greek usage permits the occasional
use of the singular even when no one writer or
tion (aocpia itiii\oKpLVi}TLKri, atroKaTaaraTLKr]) ;
book is intended. But in this case the most
with a division of the universe into stages natural translation is borne out by some of
(Statrr^/xara), and prominence given to the the language quoted. The first person sin-
sphere of " super-mundane " things with an ;
gular (drav 6^ X^yio, (pTjalf, to 'Hi', ovx on Jjv
" Ogdoad " and an " Archon " all of these
terms being conspicuous and essential in the
;
\(yw, dW iVa CT/^dew tovto oirep ^oirXo/mai

Hippolytean representation. Above all, we Setfat, Xiyu}, cpyjcriv, on rjv oXws ovStv "...
hear of the amazement of the Archon on Kal ou 6^x°/"°'' (pV'^'-'' K.T.X.) proves the
receiving " the utterance of the ministering book in Hippolytus's hands to have beea
Spirit " or " Minister " (StaKovo^, cf. Eel. written by an original speculator ;
yet this
Theod. p. 972) as being that fear of the Lord very quotation is immediately followed by a
which is called the beginning of wisdom comment on it with the third person plural
BASILIDES BASILIDES 105
which here at least can mean no more than subtle of substance {Xfrrrofifph), part
coarse
that Hippolytus held the Basilidians of his of substance
(waxv/xep^i), part needing puri-
own day responsible for the doctrines of his
fication
{(XTroKaddpaecos dfo/j.ei'ov).
author. The freshness and power of the whole neously with the Simulta-
first beginning of the seed
section, wherever we touch the actual words of
the author, strongly confirm the impression the subtle sonship burst through {5ie<x(pv^ev)
" like a wing or a
that he was no other than Basilides himself. and mounted swiftly up
" (Odyss. vii. 36) till it reached the
Thus we are led independently to the conclu- thought
sion suggested by the correspondence with the not-being God ; "for toward Him for His
information of Clement, whom we know to exceeding beauty and grace {(hpawT-nros)
have drawn from the fountain-head, the every kind of nature yearns (opiyerai), each
Exegetica. The fancy that the book used by in its own way." The coarse sonship could
Hippolytus was itself the Traditions of not mount up of itself, but it took to itself as
Matthias has nothing to recommend it. The a wing the Holy Spirit, each bearing up the
whole form is unlike that which analogy would other with mutual benefit, even as neither
lead us to expect in such a production. If it a bird can soar without wing, nor a wing
was quoted as an authority in the Exegetica, without a bird. But when it came near the
the language of Hippolytus is justified. Nor blessed and unutterable place of the subtle
is there anything in this inconsistent with the sonship and the not-being God, it could take
fact vouched for by Clement (Strom, vii. the Holy Spirit no further, as not being con-
p. 898) that Basilides claimed to have been substantial or of the same nature with itself.
taught by Glaucias, an " interpreter " of St. There, then, retaining and emitting downwards
Peter. the fragrance of the sonship like a vessel that
We shall therefore assume that the eight has once held ointment, the Holy Spirit re-
chapters of Hippolytus (vii. 20-27) represent mained, as a firmament dividing things above
faithfully though imperfectly the contents of the world from " the world " itself below (22).
part at least of the Exegetica of Basilides and
;
The third sonship continued still within the
proceed to describe his doctrine on their heap of the seed-mass. But out of the heap
authority, using likewise the testimony of burst forth into being the Great Archon, " the
Clement wherever it is available. head of the world, a beauty and greatness and
IV. Doctrine. —
Basilides asserts the begin- power that cannot be uttered."
ning of all things to have been pure nothing. hiniself aloft till he reached the firmament
He too raised
He uses every device of language to express which he supposed to be the upward end of all
absolute nonentity. He will not allow the things. Then he became wiser and every way
primitive nothing to be called even " unspeak- better than all other cosmical things except
able ": that, he says, would be naming it, and the sonship left below, which he knew not to
it is above every name that is named (20). be far better than himself. So he turned to
Nothing then being in existence, " not-being create the world in its several parts. But
God " (or Deity, ovk (ii- Oeos the article is first he " made to himself and begat out of
:

omitted here) willed to make a not-being world the things below a son far better and wiser
out of not-being things. Once more great than himself," for thus the not-being God had
pains are taken to obviate the notion that willed from the first ; and smitten with wonder
" willing " implied any mental attribute what- at his son's beauty, he set him at his right hand.
ever. Also the world so made was not the " This is what they call the Ogdoad, where
extended and differentiated world to which we the Great Archon is sitting." Then all the
gave the name, but " a single seed containing heavenly or ethereal creation (apparently
within itself all the seed-mass of the world," included in the Ogdoad), as far down as the
the aggregate of the seeds of all its forms and moon, was made by the Great Archon, in-
substances, as the mustard seed contains the spired by his wiser son (23). Again another
branches and leaves of the tree, or the pea- Archon arose out of the seed-mass, inferior to
hen's egg the brilliant colour of the full-grown the first Archon, but superior to all else
|

peacock (21). This was the one origin of all below except the sonship
j

;
; and he likewise
future growths ; their seeds lay stored up by made to himself a son wiser than himself, and
the will of the not-being God in the single became the creator and governor of the aerial
[

world-seed, as in the new-born babe its future world. This region is called the Hebdomad.
teeth and the resemblances to its father which On the other hand, in the heap and seed-mass,
are thereafter to appear. Its own origin too constituting our own (the terrestrial) stage,
from God was not a putting- forth {Trpo[3o\i'i), " those things that come to pass come to pass
as a spider puts forth its web from itself. (By according to nature, as having been previously
this assertion, on which Hippolytus dwells uttered by Him Who hath planned the fitting
with emphasis, every notion of " emanation " time and form and manner of utterance of
is expressly repudiated.) Nor was there an the thmgs that were to be uttered (u)s (pdaaavra
antecedent matter, like the brass or wood XexO'qvai vwb rod to. /xeWovra X^yecrOai ore del
wrought by a mortal man. The words " Let Kal ola Set Kal d)s Set XeXoyia/j.ei'ov) and these:

there be light, and there was light " convey things have no one to rule over them, or exer-
the whole truth. The light came into being cise care for them, or create them for suffi- :

out of nothing but the voice of the Speaker cient for them is that plan {\oyi<xfi6s) which
;
" and the Speaker was not, and that
which the not-being One planned when He was
came into being was not." making " [the seed-mass] (24).
What then was the first stage of growth of Such is the original cosmogony as conceived
the seed ? It had within itself " a tripartite by Basilides, and it
supplies the base for his
sonship, m all things consubstantial with the view of the Gospel, as well
as of the interval
not-being God." Part of the sonship was before the coming of the Gospel into the
I
106 BASILIDES BASILIDES
world. Whenthe whole world had been Ogdoad the Gospel had next to pass to
finished, and the things above the world, and the Hebdomad. Its Archon's son received
nothing was lacking, there remained in the the light from the son of the Great Archon, he
seed-mass the third sonship, which had been became himself enlightened, and declared the
left behind to do good and receive good in the Gospel to the Archon of the Hebdomad, and
seed ; and it was needful that the sonship he too feared and confessed, and all that was
thus left behind should be revealed (Rom. viii. in the Hebdomad received the light (26).
19) and restored up yonder above the Limit- remained only that the formlessness of
It
ary Spirit to join the subtle and imitative our own region should be enlightened, and
sonship and the not-being One, as it is written, that the hidden mystery should be revealed
" And the creation itself groaneth together to the third sonship left behind in the form-
and travaileth together, expecting the revela- lessness, as to " one born out of due time"
tion of the sons of God." Now we the {olouele/crpuiMttTi, I. Cor. xv. 8). The light
spiritual, he said, are sons left behind here to came down from the Hebdomad upon Jesus
order and to inform and to correct and to the Son of Mary. That this descent of the
perfect the souls whose nature it is to abide light was represented as taking place at the
in this stage. Till Moses, then, from Adam sin Annunciation, and not merely at the Baptism,
reigned, as it is written for the Great Archon
; is clearly implied in the express reference to
reigned, he whose end reaches to the firma- the words of the angel in Luke i. 35, "A Holy
ment, supposing himself to be God alone, and Spirit shall come upon thee," which are ex-
to have nothing above him, for all things plained to mean " that [? spirit] which passed
remained guarded in secret silence this is ; from the sonship through the Limitary Spirit
the mystery which was not made known to to the Ogdoad and the Hebdomad till it
the former generations. But in those times reached Mary " (the interpretation of the
the Great Archon, the Ogdoad, was king and following words, " And a power of the Most •

lord, as it appeared, of all things and more-: High shall overshadow thee," appears to be
over, the Hebdomad was king and lord of hopelessly corrupt). On the other hand,
this stage and the Ogdoad is unutterable,
; when it is described as a result of the descent
but the Hebdomad utterable. This, the of the light from the Hebdomad " upon Jesus
Archon of the Hebdomad, is he who spoke the Son of Mary," that He " was enlightened,
to Moses and said, " I am the God of Abraham being kindled in union with the light (cri'i'-
and Isaac and Jacob, and the name of God e[,afp6di t(^ (purl) that shone on Him," the
did I not make known to them " (for so, allusion to the traditional light at the Bap-
says Hippolytus, they will have it read), that tism can hardly be questioned ; more especi-
is, of the unutterable God who is Archon of ally when we read in Clement's Excerpta
the Ogdoad. All the prophets, therefore, (p. 972) that the Basihdians interpreted the
that were before the Saviour, spoke from that dove to be " the Minister," i.e. (see pp. 270,
source {eKeWev). 276) the revealing " "
power within the Holy
This short interpretation of the times before Spirit (26).
Christ, which has evidently suffered in the From the Nativity Hippolytus's exposition
process of condensation by Hippolytus, carries passes on at once to its purpose in the future
us at once to the Gospel itself. " Because and the final consummation. The world holds
therefore it was needful that we the children together as it is now, we learn, until all the
of God should be revealed, concerning whom sonship that has been left behind, to give
the creation groaned and travailed, expecting benefits to the souls in formlessness and to
the revelation, the Gospel came into the world, receive benefits by obtaining distinct form,
and passed through every principality and follows Jesus and mounts up and is purified
power and lordship, and every name that is and becomes most subtle, so that it can mount
named." There was still no downward coming by itself like the first sonship ;"for it has
from above, no departure of the ascended son- ail its power naturally established in union
ship from its place but " from below from the
; ((Twe(yTripi.yixivr)v) with the light that shone
formlessness of the heap the powers penetrated down from above" (26). When every son-
{di7]Kov(riv) up to the sonship " {i.e. probably ship has arrived above the Limitary Spirit,
throughout the scale the power of each stage " then the creation shall find mercy, for till
penetrated to the stage immediately above), now it groans and is tormented and awaits
and so thoughts {forjfxaTa) were caught from the revelation of the sons of God, that all the "
above as naphtha catches fire at a distance men of the sonship may ascend from hence
without contact. Thus the power within the (27). When this has come to pass, God will
Holy Spirit " conveyed the thoughts of the bring upon the whole world the Great Ignor-
sonship, as they flowed and drifted (piovra Kal ance, that everything may remain according to
"
(pepofx.ei'a) to the son of the Great Archon nature, and that nothing may desire aught
(25) ;and he in turn instructed the Great that is contrary to nature. Thus all the souls
Archon himself, by whose side he was sitting. of this stage, whose nature it is to continue
Then first the Great Archon learned that he immortal in this stage alone, will remain
was not God of the universe, but had himself without knowledge of anything higher and
come into being, and had above him yet better than this, lest they suffer torment by
higher beings he discovered with amazement craving for things impossible, like a fish
;

his own past ignorance, and confessed his sin desiring to feed with the sheep on the moun-
in having magnified himself. This fear of his, tains, for such a desire would have been to
said Basilides, was that fear of the Lord which them destruction. All things are indestruc-
is the beginning of wisdom (wisdom to " separ- tible while they abide in their place, but
ate and discern and perfect and restore," destructible if they aim at overleaping the
Clem. Strom, ii. 448 f.). From him and the bounds of Nature. Thus the Great Ignorance
)

BASILIDES BASILIDES 107

will overtake even the Archon of the Heb- vi^<T((ps rCov avyKexvfJL^vui'). For since the world
domad, that grief and pain and sighing may is divided into the Ogdoad and the Hebdomad
depart from him yea, it will overtake the and this stage in which we dwell, where is the
:

Great Archon of the Ogdoad, and all the formlessness, it was necessary that the
''

creations subject to him, that nothing may in things confused should be sorted by the divi-
any respect crave for aught that is against sion of Jesus. That therefore suffered which
nature or may suffer pain. " And in this was His bodily part, which was of the form-
lessness, and it was restored into the formless-
wise shall be the Restoration, all things accord-
ing to nature having been founded in the seed ness; and that rose up which was His psychical
of the universe in the beginning, and being part, which was of the Hebdomad, and it was
restored at their due seasons. And that each
restored into the Hebdomad and he raised
;

up that which belonged to the summit where


thing has its due seasons is sufficiently proved
by the Saviour's words, My hour
'
is not yet
sits the Great Archon (ttjs aKpwpeias tov p.. a.),
come,' and by the beholding of the star by and it abode beside the Great Archon and :

the Magi for even He Himself was subject


; He bore up on high that which was of the
to the '
genesis [nativity] of the periodic
'
Limitary Spirit, and it abode in the Limitary
return {dTroKaraaTdatus, here used in the Spirit and the third sonship, which had been
;

limited astrological sense, though above as left behind in [the heap] to give and receive
'
restoration generally) of stars and hours,
'
benefits, through Him was purified and
as foreordained [TrpoXeXoyiff/M^vos mounted up to the blessed sonship, passing
cf. c. 24,
:

s. f. ;X. 14] in the great heap." " He," adds


through them all." " Thus Jesus is become
Hippolytus, evidently meaning our Lord, " is
the first fruits of the sorting and the Passion
;

[in the Basilidian view] the inner spiritual has come to pass for no other purpose than
man in the natural [psychical] man that is, this [reading yeyovev t) virip for yiyovev virb],
;

a sonship leaving its soul here, not a mortal that the things confused might be sorted."
soul, but one remaining in its present place For the whole sonship left behind in the
according to nature, just as the first sonship formlessness must needs be sorted in the same
up above hath left the Limitary Holy Spirit manner as Jesus Himself hath been sorted.
in a fitting place He having at that time Thus, as Hippolytus remarks a little earlier,
;

been clothed with a soul of His own" (27). the whole theory consists of the confusion of
These last two remarks, on the subjection a seed-mass, and of the sorting and restoration
to seasons and on the ultimate abandonment into their proper places of things so confused
of the immortal but earth-bound soul by the (27).
ascending sonship or spiritual man, taking Clement's contributions to our knowledge of
place first in the Saviour and then in the Basilides refer chiefly, as has been said, to the
other " sons of God," belong in strictness to ethical side of his doctrine. Here " Faith "
an earlier part of the scheme but they may evidently played a considerable part. In itself
;

have been placed here by Basilides himself, to it was defined by " them of Basilides " (oi dirb
explain the strange consummation of the Great B.) as " an assent of the soul to any of the
Ignorance. The principle receives perhaps things which do not excite sensation, because
a better illustration from what purports to they are not present" (Strom, ii. p. the
448) ;

be an exposition of the Basilidian view of phrase being little more than a vague rendering
the Gospel, with which Hippolytus concludes of Heb. xi. i, in philosophical language.
his report. " According to them," he says,
" the Gospel is the knowledge of things above
From another unfortunately corrupt passage
(v. p. 645) it would appear that Basilides
the world, which knowledge the Great Archon accumulated forms of dignity in celebration of
understood not when then it was shewn to faith. But the eulogies were in vain, Clement
:

him that there exists the Holy Spirit, that is intimates, because they abstained from setting
the Limitary Spirit, and the sonship and a forth faith as the " rational assent of a soul
God Who is the author (aiVios) of all these possessing free will." They left faith a matter
things, even the not-being One, he rejoiced of " nature," not
of responsible choice. So
at what was told him, and was exceeding glad again, while contrasting the honour shewn by
:

this is according to them the Gospel." Here the Basilidians to faith with its disparagement
Hippolytus evidently takes too generally the in comparison with " knowledge " by the
special form under which Basilides represented
Valentinians, he accuses them (01 a.n<pi rbi/ B.
the Gospel as made known to the Great
of regarding it as " natural," and referring it
Archon. Nor, when he proceeds to say that
" Jesus according to them was born in the to " the election " while they apparently con-
sidered it to " discover doctrines without
manner that we have previously mentioned,"
is it clear that Basilides gave a different
demonstration by an intellective apprehen-
account of the Nativity itself from that sion " [to. fiadrnuLara dvaTroSet/cTcos (vpicrKOvaav
accepted by the church, because he gave a KaraXrj^ei voy]riKrj). He adds that accord-
peculiar interpretation to the angel's words. ing to them {oi dnb B.) there is at once a
" After the Nativity already made known," faith and an election of special character
adds Hippolytus, " all incidents concerning [o'lKdav) in each "stage" {5Ld<TT7)p.a), the
the Saviour came to pass according to them mundane faith of every nature follows in
[the Basilidians] as they are described in the accordance with its supermundane election,
Gospels." But all this is only introductory and for each (? being or stage) the [Divine]
to the setting forth of the primary principle. gift of his (or its) faith corresponds with his
" These things " (apparently the incidents
(or its) hope (ii. 433 f.). What " hope " was
of our Lord's life) " are come to pass that intended is not explained :probably it is
Jesus might become the first fruits of the the range of legitimate hope, the limits of
sorting of the things confused " {ttjs <f>v\oKpt- faculty accessible to the beings inhabiting
"

108 BASILIDES BASILIDES


this or that " stage." hardly likely that
It is tion attempts at some length an exposition of
Clement would have censured unreservedly this cornparison with the babe. The obvious
what appears here as the leading principle of distinction is drawn between sin committed
Basilides, the Divine resignment of a limited in act {ifepyQs) and the capacity for sin {to
sphere of action to each order of being, and duapTrjTiKoi') the infant is said to receive a
;
the Divine bestowal of proportionally limited
benefit when it is subjected to suffering,
powers of apprehending God upon the several " gaining " many hardships (n-jWa KipS^vov
orders, though it is true that Clement himself
specially cherished the thought of an upward
Si'xTKoXa). So it is, he says, with the suffering
progress from one height of being to another, of a perfect man, for his not having sinned
as part of the Divine salvation {Strom, vii. p. must not be set down to himself though he ;

Doubtless Basilides pushed elec-


has done no evil, he must have willed evil ;
835, etc.). " for I will say anything rather than call Pro-
tion so far as to sever a portion of mankind
from the rest, as alone entitled by Divine vidence {to jrpovoui') evil." He
did not shrink,
decree to receive the higher enlightenment. Clement says, and the language seems too
In this sense it must have been that he called conclusive, from applying his principle even
" the election a stranger to the world, as being to the Lord. " If, leaving all these arguments,
by nature supermundane " while Clement
;
you go on to press me with certain persons,
maintained that no man can by nature be a saying, for instance, Such an one sinned
'

stranger to the world (iv. p. 639). therefore, for such an one suffered,' if you will
It is hardly
necessary to point out how closely the limita- allow me I will say, He did not sin, but he
'

tion of spheres agrees with the doctrine on is like the suffering babe but if you force
'
;

which the Great Ignorance is founded, and the argument with greater violence, I will say
the supermundane election with that of the that any man whom you may choose to name
Third Sonship. is a man, and that God is righteous for no ;
'

The same rigid adhesion to the conception one,' as it has been said, is clear of defile-
'

of natural fixity, and inability to accept ment " {pijTrov). He likewise brought in the
'

Christian beliefs, which transcend it, led notion of sin in a past stage of existence
"
Basilides (6 r>.) to confine the remission of sins suffering its penalty here, " the elect soul
to those which are committed involuntarily suffering " honourably (en-iri,tiws) through
and in ignorance ; as though, says Clement martyrdom, and the soul of another kind
{Strom, iv. p. 634), it were a man and not God being cleansed by an appropriate punishment."
that bestowed the gift. A like fatalistic view To this doctrine of metempsychosis (ras
of Providence is implied in the language held " the Basilidians " (01 aTro B.)
ivcr!j}fj.aTU}creis)
by Basilides (in the 23rd book of his Exegetica, are likewise said to have referred the language
as quoted by Clement, Strom, iv. pp. 599-603) of the Lord about requital to the third and
in reference to the sufferings of Christian fourth generations {Exc. Theod. 976) Origen ;

martyrs. In this instance we have the benefit states that Basilides himself interpreted Rom.
of verbal extracts, though unfortunately their vii. 9 in this sense, " The Apostle said, I lived '

sense is in parts obscure. So far as they go, without a law once,' that is, before I came into
they do not bear out the allegations of Agrippa this body, I lived in such a form of body as
Castor (ap. Eus. H. E. iv. 7, § 7) that Basilides was not under a law, that of a beast namely,
taught that the partaking of food offered to or a bird" {Com. in Rom. iv. 549, Ru.) and ;

idols,and the heedless {d-n-apaipvXdKTws) abjur- elsewhere {Com. in Matt. I.e.) Origen com-
ation of the faith in time of persecution was plains that he deprived men of a salutary fear
a thing indifferent and of Origen {Com. in
;
by teaching that transmigrations are the only
Matt. iii. 856 Ru.), that he depreciated the punishments after death. What more Basil-
martyrs, and treated lightly the sacrificing to ides taught about Providence as exemplified
heathen deities. The impression seems to in martyrdoms is not easily brought together
have arisen partly from a misunderstanding of from Clement's rather confused account. He
the purpose of his argument, partly from the said that one part of what is called the will
actual doctrine and practices of later Basili- of God {i.e. evidently His own mind towards
dians but it may also have had some justifi-
; lower beings, not what He would have their
cation in incidental words which have not been mind to be) is to love (or rather perhaps be
preserved. Basilides is evidently contesting satisfied with, r]yaTrr]K^vai) all things because
the assumption, probably urged in controversy all things preserve a relation to the universe
against his conception of the justice of Provi- {Xiiyof dTTOffuit^ovai irpbs to irdv ctTracra), and
dence, that the sufferers in " what are called another to despise nothing, and a third to hate
tribulations " {Iv rats Xeyo/j.efais 6\i\pecni') are no single thing (601). In the same spirit pain
to be regarded as innocent, simply because and fear were described as natural accidents
they suffer for their Christianity. He suggests of things {eTTLiTviuLJiaiveL toIs it pdy p.aa iv) as ,

that some are in fact undergoing punishment rust of iron (603). In another sentence (602)
for previous unknown sins, while " by the Providence seems to be spoken of as set in
goodness of Him Who brings events to pass " motion by the Archon by which perhaps was
;

{toO irepLdyovTos) they are allowed the comfort meant (see Hipp. c. 24, cited above, p. 272 a)
of suffering as Christians, " not subject to the that the Archon was the unconscious agent
rebuke as the adulterer or the murderer who carried into execution (within his own
(apparently with reference to i Pet. iii. 17, " stage ") the long dormant original counsels
iv. 15, 16, ig) ; and if there be any who suffers of the not-being God. The view of the har-
without previous sin, it will not be " by the mony of the universe just referred to finds
design of an [adverse] power " {Kar iir LJiov\T)v expression, with a reminiscence of a famous
Siifd/jLeus) but as suffers the babe who appears
, sentence of Plato {Tim. 31 b), in a saying
to have committed no sin. The next quota- {Strom, v. p. 690) that Moses " set up one
BASILIDES BASILIDES 109
temple of God and an only-begotten world " Clement {Strom, iii. 508 ff.) mentions first its
{/xovoyev^ T€ Koa-fxov Plut. approval by the Valentinians, and then gives
cf. : ii. 423 a,
fca TOUTOv [toi' KOirp.oi'] elrai ixovoytvr) ry 0eaj specimens of the teaching of Basilides (oi
d7r6
Koi dyajTTjToi'). B.) and his son Isidore, by way of rebuke to the
We have a curious piece of psychological immorality of the later Basilidians, before
theory in the account of the passions attri- proceeding to the sects which favoured licence,
buted to the Basilidians (oi dix(pl tov B.). and to those which treated marriage as unholy.
They are accustomed, Clement says {Strom. He first reports the exposition of Matt. xix.
ii. p. 488), to call the passions Appendages II f. (or a similar evangelic passage), in which
(irpoffapTquaTd), stating that these are certain there is nothing specially to note except the
spirits which have a substantial existence interpretation of the last class of eunuchs as
(Kar oiKy'iav vTrapxecf), having been appended those who remain in celibacy to avoid the
(or " attached," or " adherent," various kinds distracting cares of providing a livelihood.
of close external contact being expressed by He goes on to the paraphrase of I. Cor. vii. 9,
irpoaripTTjiJLeva, cf. M. Aur. xii. 3, with Gataker's
interposing in the midst an illustrative sen-
note, and also Tertullian's ceteris appen- tence from Isidore, and transcribes the language
dicibus, sensibus et affectibus, Adv. Marc. i. 25, used
about the class above mentioned. " But
cited by Gieseler) to the rational soul in a suppose a young man either poor or (?) de-
certain primitive turmoil and confusion, and pressed [/caTr70/?s seems at least less unlikely
that again other bastard and alien natures than Karwipeprfs], and in accordance with the
of spirits grow upon these (irpoffeirtfpveadai word [in the Gospel] unwilling to marry, let
TiivTaLs), as of a wolf, an ape, a lion, a goat, him not separate from his brother let him say
;

whose characteristics {toiwij.aTa), becoming per- '


I have entered into the holy place [rd ayta,

ceptible in the region of the soul {(pavTai'ofj.eva probably the communion of the church],
irepi Tr]v ^vxv"), assimilate the desires of the nothing can befall me '
;but if he have a
son to the animals ; for they imitate the suspicion [? self-distrust, inrovoLav '4xv\, let him
actions of those whose characteristics they say,
'
Brother, lay thy hand on me, that I
wear, and not only acquire intimacy (wpoaoL- may sin not,' and he shall receive help both
Keiovvrai) with the impulses and impressions to mind and to senses {votittiv Kal aladrjTrjv] ;

of the irrational animals, but even imitate let him only have the will to carry out com-
{j'7;\oO<Ti) the movements and beauties of pletely what is good, and he shall succeed.
plants, because they likewise wear the char- But sometimes we say with the lips, We will
'

acteristics of plants appended to them ; and not sin,' while our thoughts are turned towards
[the passions] have also characteristics of sinning : such an one abstains by reason of
habit [derived from stones], as the hardness fear from doing what he wills, lest the pimish-
of adamant (cf. p. 487 med.). In the absence ment be reckoned to his account. But the
of the context it is impossible to determine estate of mankind has only certain things at
the precise meaning and origin of this singular once necessary and natural, clothing being
theory. It was probably connected with the necessary and natural, but to tQiv drppoSicriujv
doctrine of metempsychosis, which seemed to natural, yet not necessary" (cf. Plut. Mar.
find support in Plato's Timaeus 42, 90 f.), and 989).
was cherished by some neo- Pythagoreans Although we have no evidence that Basil-
later in the 2nd cent. (cf. Zeller, Philos. d. ides, like some others, regarded our Lord's
Gr. V. 198 f.);
while the plurality of souls is Baptism as the time when a Divine being first
derided by Clement as making the body a was joined to Jesus of Nazareth, it seems clear
Trojan horse, with apparent reference (as that he attached some unusual significance to
Saumaise points out, on Simplic. Epict. 164) the event. " They of Basilides {ol d-n-d B.),"
to a similar criticism of Plato in the Theaetetus says Clement {Strom, i. 146, p. 408), " cele-
(184 d). And again Plutarch (de Comin. Not. brate the day of His Baptism by a preliminary
45, p. 1084) ridicules the Stoics {i.e. appar- night-service of [Scripture] readings {TrpoSia-
ently Chrysippus) for a " strange and out- vvKTepevovTe'5 dvayvuiaeaL) and they say
;

landish " notion that all virtues and vices, that the fifteenth year of Tiberius Caesar
' '

arts and memories, impressions and passions (Luke iii. i) is (or means) the fifteenth day of
and impulses and assents (he adds further the [Egyptian] month Tybi, while some [make
down even " acts," evepyeias. such as " walk- the day] the eleventh of the same month."
ing, dancing, supposing, addressing, reviling ") Again it is briefly stated in the Excerpta (16,
are not merely " bodies " (of course in the p. 972) that the dove of the Baptism is said
familiar Stoic sense) but living creatures or by the Basilidians (oi dirb B. ) to be the Minister
animals (foja), crowded apparently round the (6 5ia/co!'os). And the same association is
central point within the heart where " the implied in what Clement urges elsewhere
ruling principle " {to rjye/xovLKov) is located {Strom, ii. p. 449)
:
" If ignorance belongs to
:

by this " swarm," he says, of hostile animals the class of good things, why is it brought to
they turn each one of us into " a paddock or an end by amazement [i.e. the amazement of
a stable, or a Trojan horse." Such a theory the Archon], and [so] the Minister that they
might seem to Basilides an easy deduction speak of [avroU] is superfluous, and the Pro-
from his fatalistic doctrine of Providence, and clamation, and the Baptism if ignorance had:

of the consequent immutability of all natures. not previously existed, the Minister would not
The only specimen which we have of the have descended, nor would amazement have
practical ethics of Basilides is of a favourable seized the Archon, as they themselves say."
kind, though grossly misunderstood and mis- This language, taken in conjunction with
applied by Epiphanius (i. 211 f.). Reciting passages already cited from Hippolytus (c. 26),
the views of different heretics on Marriage, implies that Basilides regarded the Baptism
no BASILIDES BASILIDES

as the occasion when Jesus received " the and perceiving that at that time everything
Gospel " by a Divine illumination. The sup- was preoccupied, decided to maintain that
posed descent of " Christ " for union with dualism which was likewise in favour with
" Jesus," though constantly assumed by Scythianus," named shortly before (c. 51,
Hilgenfeld, is as destitute of ancient attesta- p. 186) as a contemporary of the Apostles, who
tion as it is inconsistent with the tenor of had introduced dualism from a Pythagorean
Basilidian doctrine recorded by Clement, to source. " Finally, as he had no assertion to
say nothing of Hippolytus. It has been ar- make of his own, he adopted the sayings of
gued from Clement's language by Gieseler (in others " (the last words are corrupt, but this
the Halle A.L.Z. for 1823, i. 836 f. ; cf. K.G. must be nearly the sense). " And all his
i. I. 186), that the Basilidians were the first books contain things difficult and rugged."
to celebrate our Lord's Baptism. The early The writer then cites the beginning of the
history of the Epiphany is too obscure to thirteenth book of his treatises (tractatuum) in
,

allow a definite conclusion on this point ; but which it was said that " the saving word " (the
the statement about the Basilidian services Gospel) by means of the parable of the rich
of the preceding night receives some illustra- man and the poor man pointed out the source
tion from a passage of Epiphanius, lately from which nature (or a nature) without a root
published from the Venice MS. ii. 483 Dind. : and without a place germinated and extended
iii. 632 Oehler), in which we hear of the night itself over things [rebus supervenientem, unde
before the Epiphany as spent in singing and pullulaverit). He breaks off a few words later
flute-playing in a heathen temple at Alex- and adds that after some 500 lines Basilides
andria : so that probably the Basilidian rite invites his reader to abandon idle and curious
was a modification of an old local custom. elaborateness (varietate), and to investigate
According to Agrippa Castor (Eus. I.e.) Basil- rather the studies and opinions of barbarians
ides " in Pythagorean fashion " prescribed a on good and evil. Certain of them, Basilides
silence of five years to his disciples. states, said that there are two beginnings of all
The same author, we hear, stated that things, light and darkness ; and he subjoins
Basilides " named as prophets to himself some particulars of doctrine of a Persian cast.
Barcabbas and Barcoph, providing himself Only one set of views, however, is mentioned,
likewise with certain other [? prophets] who and the Acts end abruptly here in the two
had no existence, and that he bestowed upon known MSS. of the Latin version in which
them barbarous appellations to strike amaze- alone this part of them is extant.
ment into those who have an awe of such It is generally assumed that we have here
things." The alleged prophecies apparently unimpeachable evidence for the strict dualism
belonged to the apocryphal Zoroastrian of Basilides. It seems certain that the writer
literature popular with various Gnostics. of the Acts held his Basilides responsible for
From Hippolytus we hear nothing about the barbarian opinions quoted, which are
these prophecies, which will meet us again clearly dualistic, and he had the whole book
presently with reference to Basilides's son before him. Yet his language on this point is
Isidore, but he tells us {Haer. vii. 20) that, loose, as if he were not sure of his ground ;

according to Basilides and Isidore, Matthias and the quotation which he gives by no means
spoke to them mystical doctrines {\6yovs bears him out : while it is quite conceivable
diroKpvcpovs) which he heard in private teach- that he may have had some acquaintance with
ing from the Saviour : and in like manner dualistic Basilidians of a later day, such as
Clement (Strom, vii. 900) speaks of the sect of certainly existed, and have thus given a wrong
Basilides as boasting that they took to them- interpretation to genuine words of their
selves the glory of Matthias. Origen also master (cf. Uhlhorn, 52 f.). It assuredly
{Horn, in Lite. i. t. iii. p. 933) and after him requires considerable straining to draw the
"
Eusebius refer to a Gospel " of or according brief interpretation given of the parable to a
to Matthias {H. E. iii. 25, 6). The true name Manichean position, and there is nothing to
was apparently the Traditions of Matthias : shew that the author of it himself adopted the
three interesting and by no means heretical first set of " Isarbarian " opinions which he re-
extracts are given by Clement {Strom, ii. 452 ;
ported. Indeed the description of evil (for evil
iii. 523 [copied by Eusebius, H. E. iii. 29. doubtless is intended) as a supervenient nature,
4] ; vii. 882). In the last extract the respon- without root and without place, reads almost
sibility laid on " the elect " for the sin of as if it were directed against Persian doctrine,
a neighbour recalls a passage already cited and may be fairly interpreted by Basilides's
(p. 275 b) from Basilides. comparison of pain and fear to the rust of
It remains only to notice an apparent iron as natural accidents (iiria-ufxlBuivei). The
reference to Basilides, which has played a identity of the Basilides of the Acts with the
considerable part in modern expositions of his Alexandrian has been denied by Gieseler with
doctrine. Near the end of the anonymous some shew of reason. It is at least strange
Acts of the Disputation between Archelaus and that our Basilides should be described simply
Mani, written towards the close of the 3rd as a " preacher among the Persians," a
cent, or a little later, Archelaus disputes the character in which he is otherwise unknown ;

originality of Mani's teaching, on the ground and all the more since he has been previously
that it took rise a long time before with " a mentioned with Marcion and Valentinus as a
certain barbarian " (c. 55, in Routh, Rell. heretic of familiar name (c. 38, p. 138). On
Sac. V. 196 ff.). " There was also," he says, the other hand, it has been justly urged that
" a preacher among the Persians, a certain the two passages are addressed to different
Basilides of great [or greater,' antiuqior]
'
persons. The correspondence is likewise
antiquity, not long after the times of our remarkable between the " treatises " in at
Apostles, who being himself also a crafty man, least thirteen books, with an interpretation of
BASILIDES BASILIDES 111

a parable among their contents, and the the same time own
inherent limitations
its
"twenty-four books on the Gospel" mentioned brought faith into captivity. An antecedent
by Agrippa Castor, called Exegetica by matter was expressly repudiated, the words
Clement. Thus the evidence for the identity of Gen. i. 3 eagerly appropriated, and a
of the two writers may on the whole be treated Divine counsel represented as foreordaining all
as preponderating. But the ambiguity of future growths and processes yet the chaotic
;

interpretation remains ; and it would be im- nullity out of which the developed universe
possible to rank Basilides confidently among was to spring was attributed with equal bold-
dualists, even if the passage in the Acts stoodness to its Maker Creator and creation were
:

alone : much more to use it as a standard by not confused, but they melted away in the
which to force a dualistic interpretation upon distance together. Nature was accepted not
other clearer statements of his doctrine. only as prescribing the conditions of the lower
Gnosticism was throughout eclectic, and life, but as practically the supreme and per-
Basilides superadded an eclecticism of his own. manent arbiter of destiny. Thus though faith
Antecedent Gnosticism, Greek philosophy, and regained its rights, it remained an energy of
the Christian faith and Scriptures all exercised the understanding, confined to those who
a powerful and immediate influence over his had the requisite inborn capacity while the
;

mind. It is evident at a glance that his dealings of God with man were shut up within
system is far removed from any known form of the lines of mechanical justice. The majestic
Syrian or original Gnosticism. Like that of and, so to speak, pathetic view bounded by
Valentinus, it has been remoulded in a Greek the large Basilidian horizon was well fitted to
spirit, but much more completely. Historical inspire dreams of a high and comprehensive
records fail us almost entirely as to the per- theology, but the very fidelity with which
sonal relations of the great heresiarchs ;
yet Basilides strove to cling to reality must have
internal evidence furnishes some indications soon brought to light the incompetence of his
which it can hardly be rash to trust. Ancient teaching to solve any of the great problems.
writers usually name Basilides before Valen- Its true office consisted in supplying one of the
tinus ; but there is little doubt that they were indispensable antecedents to the Alexandrian
at least approximately contemporaries, and it Catholicism which arose two generations later.
is not unlikely that Valentinus was best V. Refutations. — Notwithstanding the wide
known personally from his sojourn at Rome, and lasting fame of Basilides as a typical
which was probably (Lipsius, Quellen d. alt. heresiarch, no treatise is recorded as written
Ketzergeschichte, 256) the last of the recorded specially in confutation of his teaching except
stages of his life. There is at all events no that of Agrippa Castor. He had of course a
serious chronological difhculty in supposing place in the various works against all heresies ;

that the Valentinian system was the starting- but, as we have seen, the doctrines described
point from which Basilides proceeded to con- and criticized in several of them belong not to
struct by contrast his own theory, and this is him but to a sect of almost wholly different
the view which a comparison of doctrines character. Hippolytus, who in later years
suggests. In no point, unless it be the reten- became acquainted with the Exegetica, con-
tion of the widely spread term archon, is tented himself with detecting imaginary
Basilides nearer than Valentinus to the older plagiarisms from Aristotle (vii, 14-20). Even
Gnosticism, while several leading Gnostic Origen, who likewise seems to have known
forms or ideas which he discards or even re- the work (if we may judge by the quotation
pudiates are held fast by Valentinus. Such on metempsychosis given at p. 275, and by
are descent from above (see a passage at the a complaint of " long-winded fabling," aut
end of c. 22, and p. 272 b, above), putting Basilidis longam fabulositatem : Com. in
forth or pullulation (imperfect renderings of Matt. xxiv. 23, p. 864 Ru.), shews in the few
Trpo/ioX??, see p. 271 b), syzygies of male and casual remarks in his extant writings little real
female powers, and the deposition of faith to understanding even of Basilides's errors. On
a lower level than knowledge. Further, the the other hand, Clement's candid intelligence
unique name given by Basilides to the Holy enables him to detect the latent flaws of
Spirit, " the Limitary (fxidbpiov) Spirit," to- principle in the Basilidian theory without
gether with the place assigned to it, can hardly mocking at such of the superficial details as he
be anything else than a transformation of the has occasion to mention. Hilgenfeld, writing
strange Valentinian " Limit " (opos), which (1848) on the pseudo-Clementine literature,
in like manner divides the Pleroraa from the made a singular attempt to shew that in one
lower world ; though, in conformity with the early recension of the materials of part of the
unifying purpose of Basilides, the Limitary Recognitions Simon was made to utter Basil-
Spirit is conceived as connecting as well as idian doctrine, to be refuted by St. Peter, the
parting the two worlds (cf. Baur in Theol. traces of which had been partly effaced by
fahrb. for 1856, 156 f.). The same softening of his becoming the mouthpiece of other Gnostics
oppositions which retain much of their force in later recensions. Ritschl took the same
even with Valentinus shews itself in other view in the first ed. of his Entstehung d. altkath.
instances, as of matter and spirit, creation Kirche (1850, pp. 169-174) ; but the whole
and redemption, the Jewish age and the speculation vanishes in his far maturer second
Christian age, the earthly and the heavenly ed. of 1857. The theory lacks even plausi-
elements in the Person of our Lord. The bility. The only resemblances between this
strongest impulse in this direction probably part of the Recognitions and either the true or
came from Christian ideas and the power of a the spurious Basilidianism are common to
true though disguised Christian faith. But various forms of religious belief ;and not a
Greek speculative Stoicism tended likewise to single distinctive feature of either Basilidiaa
break down the inherited dualism, while at system occurs in the Recognitions. A
brief but
112 BAStLIDES BAs!Lm£S
sufficient reply is given in Uhlhoru's Horn. u. remarkable. A succession of brilliant fol-
Recog. d. Clem. Rom. 1854, pp. 286 ff. lowers carried forward and developed the
VI. —
Isodorus. In the passage already Valentinian doctrine. It is a singular testi-
noticed (Haer. vii. 20) Hippolytus couples mony to the impression created at the outset
with Basilides " his true child and disciple " by Basilides and his system that he remained
Isidore. He is there referring to the use for centuries one of the eponymi of heresy ;

which they made of the Traditions of Matthias ;


his name is oftener repeated, for instance, in
but in the next sentence he treats them as the writings of Origen, than that of any other
jointly responsible for the doctrines which he dreaded of the ante-Nicene church except
recites. Our only other authority respecting Marcion, Valentinus, and afterwards Mani.
Isidore is Clement (copied by Theodoret), who But the original teaching, for all its impressive-
calls him in like manner " at once son and ness, had no vitality. The Basilidianism
disciple " of Basilides (Strom, vi. 767). In which did survive, and that, as far as the
this place he gives three extracts from the evidence goes, only locally, was, as we have
first and second books of Isidore's Expositions seen, a poor and corrupt remnant, adulterated
('E^r;77)rt/vd) of the Prophet Parchor. They are with the very elements which the founder
all parts of a plea, like so many put forward had strenuously rejected.
after the example of Josephus against Apian, VII. The Spurious Basilidian System. —
In
that the higher thoughts of heathen philo- briefly sketching this degenerate Basilidianism
sophers and mythologers were derived from a it will seldom be needful to distinguish the
Jewish source. The last reference given is to authorities, which are fundamentally two,
Pherec3'des, who had probably a peculiar Irenaeus (loi f.) and the lost early treatise of
interest for Isidore as the earliest promulgator Hippolytus both having much in common,
;

of the doctrine of metempsychosis known to and both being interwoven together in the
tradition (cf. Zeller, Philos. d. Grieehen, i. report of Epiphanius (pp. 68-75). The other
55 f. ed. 3). His allegation that Pherecydes relics of the Hippolytean Compendium are the "

followed the prophecy of Ham " has been accounts of Philaster (32), and the supplement
perversely urged as a sign that he set up the to Tertullian (4). At the head of this theology
prophets of a hated race against the prophets stood the Unbegotten (neuter in Epiph.), the
of Israel. The truth is rather that the Only Father. From Him was born or put
identification of Zoroaster with Ham or Ham's forth Niis, and from Nus Logos, from Logos
son, whatever may have been its origin, Phronesis, from Phronesis Sophia and Dyna-
rendered it easy to claim for the apocryphal mis, from Sophia and Dynamis principalities,
Zoroastrian books a quasi-biblical sanctity powers, and angels. This first set of angels
as proceeding from a son of Noah, and that first made the first heaven, and then gave
Isidore gladly accepted the theory as evidence birth to a second set of angels who made a
for his argument. " The prophets " from second heaven, and so on till 365 heavens had
whom " some of the philosophers " appro- been made by 365 generations of angels, each
priated a wisdom not their own can be no other heaven being apparently ruled by an Archon
than the Jewish prophets. Again Clement to whom a name was given, and these names
quotes his book On an Adherent Soul (116,01 being used in magic arts. The angels of the
wpoffcpuovs ^vxv^) in correction of his preced- lowest or visible heaven made the earth and
ing quotation from Basilides on the passions man. They were the authors of the pro-
as " appendages " {Strom, ii. 488). If the
phecies and the Law in particular was given
;

eight lines transcribed are a fair sample of the by their Archon, the God of the Jews. He
treatise, Isidore would certainly appear to being more petulant and wilful than the other
have argued here against his father's teaching. angels {uapLibrepov kuI avdadearfpov), in his
He insists on the unity {/.i.oi'o/xepris) of the desire to secure empire for his people, pro-
soul, and maintains that Isad men will find voked the rebellion of the other angels and
" no common excuse " in the violence of the their respective peoples. Then the Unbegotten
" appendages " for pleading that their evil and Innominable Father, seeing what discord
acts were involuntary :our duty is, he says, prevailed among men and among angels, and
" by overcoming the inferior creation within how the Jews were perishing, sent His First-
us (rijs eXcLTTOvos tv r]fjui' KTiaewi) through
born Niis, Who Who
is Christ, to deliver those
believed on Him from the power of the makers
the reasoning faculty (rui XoytariKui), to shew " He," the Basilidians said,
of the world.
ourselves to have the mastery." A third " is our salvation, even He Who came and
passage from Isidore's Ethics {Strom, iii. 510) revealed to us alone this truth." He accord-
is intercalated into his father's argument on
ingly appeared on earth and performed mighty
I. Cor. vii. 9, to the same purport but in a
works ; but His appearance was only in out-
coarser strain. Its apparent difficulty arises
ward show, and He did not really take flesh.
partly from a corrupt reading {avrixov ixaxi-/u^v^
It was Simon of Cyrene that was crucified ;
yvvaLKOS, where 7a/xer^s must doubtless be for
Jesus exchanged forms with him on the
substituted for /xiX'M'??. avT^x°^' meaning not way, and then, standing unseen opposite in
" resist," which would be dfTexe, as in the
Simon's form, mocked those who did the deed.
preceding line, but "have recourse to"); But He Himself ascended into heaven, passing
partly from the assumption that the following through all the powers, till He was restored
words oTav d^ k.t.X. are likewise by Isidore, to the presence of His own Father. The
whereas the sense shews them to be a con- two fullest accounts, those of Irenaeus and
tinuation of the exposition of Basilides himself. Epiphanius, add by way of appendix another
Basilides had to all appearance no eminent particular of the antecedent mythology a ;

disciple except his own son. In this respect short notice on the same subject being like-
the contrast between him and Valentinus is wise inserted parenthetically by Hippolytus
BASILIDES BASILIDES 113

(vii. 26, p. 240 : Uhlhorn, D. Basilid.


cf. and the Prophets andthe Apostles, but
Syst. 65 f.). The supreme power and source believing otherwise," the reference is probably
of being above all principalities and powers to this contrast between the outward confor-
and angels (such is evidently the reference mity of the sect and their secret doctrines and
of Epiphanius's avruiv Irenaeus substitutes
:
practices. The Basilidians considered them-
" heavens," which in this connexion comes selves to be no longer Jews, but to have be-
to much the same thing) is Abrasax, the come more than Christians (such seems to
Greek letters of whose name added together be the sense of the obscure phrase Xpianavovi
as numerals make up 365, the number of the de fx-qKin -Yeyevrjadai., for the nondum of the
heavens whence, they apparently said, the
; translator of Irenaeus can hardly be right).
year has 365 days, and the human body 365 Repudiation of martyrdom was naturally
members. This supreme Power they called accompanied by indiscriminate use of things
" the Cause " and " the First Archetype," offered to idols. Nay, the principle of in-
while they treated as a last or weakest product difference is said to have been carried so far
(Hysterema, a Valentinian term, contrasted as to sanction promiscuous immorality. la
with Pleroma) this present world as the work this and other respects our accounts may
of the last Archon (Epiph. 74 a). It is evident possibly contain exaggerations but Clement's
;

from these particulars that Abrasax was the already cited complaint of the flagrant de-
name of the first of the 365 Archons, and generacy in his time from the high standard
accordingly stood below Sophia and Dynamis set up by Basilides himself is unsuspicious
and their progenitors but his position is not
;
evidence, and a libertine code of ethics would
expressly stated, so that the writer of the find an easy justification in such maxims as
supplement to Tertullian had some excuse for are imputed to the Basilidians. It is hardly
confusing him with " the Supreme God." necessary to add that they expected the
On these doctrines various precepts are salvation of the soul alone, insisting on the
said to have been founded. The most dis- natural corruptibility of the body. They
tinctive is the discouragement of martyrdom, indulged in magic and invocations, " and all
which was made to rest on several grounds. other curious arts." A wrong reading taken
To confess the Crucified was called a token from the inferior MSS. of Irenaeus has added
of being still in bondage to the makers of the the further statement that they used " im-
body (nay, he that denied the Crucified was ages " and this single spurious word is often
;

pronounced to be free from the dominion of cited in corroboration of the popular belief
those angels, and to know the economy of the that the numerous ancient gems on which
Unbegotten Father) but it was condemned
;
grotesque mythological combinations are
especially as a vain and ignorant honour paid accompanied by the mystic name ABPASA3
not to Christ, Who neither suffered nor was were of Basilidian origin. It is shewn in
crucified, but to Simon of Cyrene ; and D. C. B. (4-V0I. ed.), art. Abrasax, where
further, a public confession before men was Lardner {Hist, of Heretics, ii. 14-28) should
stigmatized as a giving of that which is holy have been named with Beausobre, that there
to the dogs and a casting of pearls before is no tangible evidence for attributing any
swine. This last precept is but one expression known gems to Basilidianism or any other
of the secrecy which the Basilidians diligently form of Gnosticism, and that in all probability
cultivated, following naturally on the supposed the Basilidians and the heathen engravers of
possession of a hidden knowledge. They gems alike borrowed the name from some
evaded our Lord's words, " Him that denieth Semitic mythology.
Me before men," etc., by pleading, " We are Imperfect and distorted as the picture may
the men, and all others are swine and dogs." be, such was doubtless in substance the creed
He who had learned their lore and known all of Basilidians not half a century after Basilides
angels and their powers was said to become had written. Were the name absent from
invisible and incomprehensible to all angels the records of his system and theirs, no one
and powers, even as also Caulacau was (the would have suspected any relationship be-
sentence in which Irenaeus, our sole authority tween them, much less imagined that they
here, first introduces Caulacau, a name not belonged respectively to master and to dis-
peculiar to the Basilidians, is unfortunately ciples. Outward mechanism and inward
corrupt). And as the Son was unknown to principles alike full of contrasts
are no ;

all, so also, the tradition ran, must members attempts of critics to trace correspondences
of their community be known to none but ;
between the mythological personages, and to
while they know all and pass through the explain them by supposed condensations or
midst of all, remain invisible and unknown mutilations, have attained even plausibility.
to all, observing the maxim, " Do thou know Two misunderstandings have been specially
all, but let no one know thee." Accordingly misleading. Abrasax, the chief or Archon of
they must be ready to utter denials and un- the first set of angels, has been confounded
willing to suffer for the Name, since [to out- with " the Unbegotten Father," and the God
ward appearance] they resembled all. It of the Jews, the Archon of the lowest heaven,
naturally followed that their mysteries were has been assumed to be the only Archon re-
to be carefully guarded, and disclosed to cogTiized by the later Basilidians, though
" only one out of 1000 and two out of 10,000." Epiphanius (69 B.C.) distinctly implies that
When Philaster (doubtless after Hippolytus) each of the 365 heavens had its Archon. The
tells us in his first sentence about Basilides mere name " Archon " is common to most
that he was " called by many a heresiarch, forms of Gnosticism. So again, because
because he violated the laws of Christian truth Clement tells us that Righteousness and her
by making an outward show and discourse daughter Peace abide in substantive being "
[proponendo et loquendo) concerning the Law within the Ogdoad, " the Unbegotten Father
8
114 BASILIDES BASILIDES
and the five grades or forms of creative mind (with 365 Archons, p. 364), and elaborate
which intervene between Him and the creator- collocations of heavens, and a numerical image
angels are added in to make up an Ogdoad, taken from Deut. xxxii. 30 (p. 354). The
though none is recorded as acknowledged by Basilidian Simon of Cyrene is apparently
the disciples a combination so arbitrary and unique.

:

so incongruous needs no refutation. On the VIII. History of the Basilidian Sect. There
other hand, those five abstract names have is no evidence that the sect extended itself
an air of true Basilidian Hellenism, and the beyond Egypt but there it survived for a long
;

two systems possess at least one negative time. Epiphanius (about 375) mentions the
feature in common, the absence of syzygies Prosopite, Athribite, Saite, and " Alexandrio-
and of all imagery connected directly with polite " (read Andropolite) nomes or cantons,
sex. On their ethical side the connexion and also Alexandria itself, as the places in
is discerned with less difficulty. The con- which it still throve in his time, and which he
tempt for martyrdom, which was perhaps the accordingly inferred to have been visited by
most notorious characteristic of the Basil- Basilides (68 c). All these places lie on the
idians, would find a ready excuse in their western side of the Delta, between Memphis
master's speculative paradox about martyrs, and the sea. Nearer the end of cent. iv.
even if he did not discourage martyrdom Jerome often refers to Basilides in connexion
himself. The silence of five years which he with the hybrid Priscillianism of Spain, and the
imposed on novices might easily degenerate mystic names in which its votaries delighted.
into the perilous dissimulation of a secret According to Sulpicius Severus (Chron. ii. 46)
sect,while their exclusiveness would be nour- this heresy took its rise in " the East and
ished by his doctrine of the Election and
; Egypt " but, he adds, it is not easy to say
;

the same doctrine might further after a while " what the beginnings were out of which it
receive an antinomian interpretation. The there grew " {quibus ibi initiis coaluerit). He- _

nature of the contrast of principle in the states, however, that it was first brought to
theological part of the two creeds suggests Spain by Marcus, a native of Memphis.
how so great a change may have arisen. The This fact explains how the name of Basilides
system of Basilides was a high-pitched philo- and some dregs of his disciples' doctrines or
sophical speculation, entirely unfitted to exer- practices found their way to so distant a land
cise popular influence, and transporting its as Spain, and at the same time illustrates the
adherents to a region remote from the sym- probable hybrid origin of the secondary Basil-
pathies of men imbued with the old Gnostic idianism itself.
phantasies, while it was too artificial a —
IX. Literature. Basilides of course occupies
compound to attract heathens or Catholic a prominent place in every treatise on Gnosti-
Christians. The power of mind and character cism, such as those of Neander (including the
which the remains of his writings disclose might Church History), Baur (the same), Lipsius,
easily gather round him in the first instance and Moller {Geschichte der Kosmologie in der
a crowd who, though they could enter into Christlichen Kirche). Two reviews by Gieseler
portions only of his teaching, might remain {Halle A. L. Z. for 1823, pp. 335-338 Studien ;

detached from other Gnostics, and yet in their u. Kritiken for 1830, pp. 395ff.) containvaluable
theology relapse into " the broad highway of matter. The best monograph founded on
vulgar Gnosticism " (Baur in the Tiibingen the whole evidence is that of Uhlhorn {Das
Theol. Jahrh. for 1856, pp. 158 f.), and make Basilidianische System, Gottingen, 1855),
for themselves out of its elements, whether for- with which should be read an essay by Baur
tuitously or by the skill of some now forgotten {Theol. Jahrb. for 1856, pp. 121-162) Jacobi's
;

leader, a new mythological combination. In monograph [Basilidis Philosophi Gnostici


this manner evolution from below might once Sententius, etc., Berlin 1852) being also good.
more give place to emanation from above, Able expositions of the view that the true
Docetism might again sever heaven and earth, doctrine of Basilides is not represented in
and a loose practical dualism (of the pro- the larger work of Hippolytus Against all
founder speculative dualism of the East there Heresies will be found in a paper by Hilgenfeld,
is no trace) might supersede all that Basilides to which Baur's article in reply is appended
had taught as to the painful processes by which (pp. 86-121), with scattered notices in other
sonship attains its perfection. The composite articles of his (especially in his Zeitschrift for
character of the secondary Basilidianism may 1862, pp. 452 ii.) ; and in Lipsius's Gnosticis-
be seen at a glance in the combination of the mtis. Three articles by Gundert {Zeitschtift
five Greek abstractions preparatory to creation f. d. Luth. Theol. for 1855, 209
ff., and 1856,

with the Semitic hosts of creative angels bear- 37 ff., 443are of less importance.
ff.) The
ing barbaric names. Basilidianism seems to lecture in Dr. Hansel's post-
on Basilides
have stood alone in appropriating Abrasax ;
humous book on The Gnostic Heresies is able
but Caulacau plays a part in more than one and independent and makes full use of the
system, and the functions of the angels recur best German criticisms, but underrates the
in various forms of Gnosticism, and especially influence of Stoical conceptions on Basilides,
in that derived from Saturnilus. Saturnilus and exaggerates that of Platonism and after ;

likewise affords a parallel in the character the example of Baur's Christliche Gnosis in
assigned to the God of the Jew as an angel, respect of Gnosticism generally, though
and partly in the reason assigned for the starting from an opposite point of view, it
Saviour's mission while the Antitactae of
; suffers from an effort to find in Basilides a
Clement recall the resistance to the God of precursor of Hegel. Cf. Harnack, Gesch. Alt.
the Jews inculcated by the Basilidians. Other Chr. Lit. 1893, pp. 157-161 Th. Zahn, Gesch.
;

" Basilidian " features appear in the Pistis des N. T. kanon (1888-1889), i. 763-774; J-
Sophia, viz. many barbaric names of angels Kennedy, " Buddhist Gnosticism the System:
BASILISCUS BASILIUS OF ANCYRA 115

of Basilides " (Lond. 1902, Journal of the Royal sentations of the abominable character of
Astatic Society). [h.] Aetius's doctrines so exasperated Gallus
Basillscus, mart>T, bp. of Comana, martyred against him that he issued an order for his
with Lucianus at Nicomedia under Maximin, execution ; but on having personal inter-
A.D. 312 (Pallad. Dial, de V. St. Chrys. xi., course with him pronounced him maligned,
misreading, however, Maximian for Maximin). and took him as his theological tutor.
St. Chrysostom, when exiled, was received [Aetius.] Basil's influence increased, and
upon his journey in a " mart^Tium," built just before Easter, a.d. 358, when a number
some five or six miles out of Comana in of bishops had assembled at Ancyra for the
memory of Basiliscus, and there died and was dedication of a new church that Basil had
buried (Theod. H. E. v. 30; Soz. viii. 28; built, Basil received letters from George of
Pallad. as above Niceph. xiii. 37).
; Basiliscus Laodicea speaking with great alarm of the
is said to have been shod with iron shoes, red spread of Anomoean doctrines, and entreating
hot, and then beheaded and thrown into the him to avail himself of the opportunity to
river {Menol. in Baron. May 22). [a.w.h.] obtain a synodical condemnation of Aetius
Basilius of Ancyra (Bao-tXeios, also called and Eunomius. Other bishops were accord-
Baslias, Socr. ii. 42), a native of Ancyra, ingly summoned, and eighteen anathemas
originally a physician (Hieron. de Vir. III. 89 ; were drawn up. Basil himself, with Eusta-
Suidas, S.V.), and subsequently bp. of that thius and Eleusius, were deputed to commu-
city, A.D. 336-360, one of the most respectable nicate these anathemas to Constantius at Sir-
prelates of the semi-Arian party, whose essen- mium. The deputies were received with much
tial orthodoxy was acknowledged by Athan- consideration by the emperor, who ratified
asius himself, the differences between them their synodical decrees and gave his authority
being regarded as those of language only for their publication. Basil availed himself
(Athan. de Synod, torn. i. pp. 915, 619, ed. of his influence over Constantius to induce him
Morell, Paris, 1627). He was a man of learn- to summon a general council for the final
ing, of intellectualpower, and dialectical skill, settlement of the questions that had been so
and maintained an unwavering consistency long distracting the church. It was ultimate-
which drew upon him the hostility of the ly decided to divide the council into two, and
shifty Acacians and their time-serving leader. Ariminum was selected for the West, and
The jealousy of Acacius was also excited by Seleucia in Isauria for the East. The Eastern
the unbounded influence Basil at one time council met, Sept. 27, 359. Basil did not
exercised over the weak mind of Constantius, arrive till the third day. He was soon made
and his untiring animosity worked Basil's over- aware that his influence with the emperor had
throw. On the deposition of Marcellus, the been undermined by his Acacian rivals, and
aged bp. of Ancyra, by the Eusebian party, that his power was gone. When he reproved
on the charge of Sabellianism, at a synod Constantius for unduly favouring them, the
meeting at Constantinople, a.d. 336, Basil emperor bid him hold his peace, and charged
was chosen bishop in his room. He enjoyed him with being himself the cause of the dis-
the see undisturbed for eleven years ; but in sensions that were agitating the church
347, the council of Sardica, after the with- (Theod. ii. 27). At another synod convened
drawal of the Eusebians to Philippopolis, at Constantinople under the immediate super-
reinstated Marcellus, and excommunicated intendence of Constantius, Acacius found him-
Basil as " a wolf who had invaded the fold " self master of the situation and deposed whom
(Socr. ii. 20). Three years later, a.d. 350, he would. Basil was one of the first to fall.
the Eusebians were again in the ascendant, No doctrinal errors were charged against him.
through the powerful patronage of Constan- He was condemned on frivolous and unproved
tius, and Basil was replaced in his see by the grounds, together with Cyril of Jerusalem,
express order of the emperor (Socr. ii. 26). Eustathius of Sebaste, and other leading pre-
Basil speedily obtained a strong hold over lates. Banishment followed deposition. Basil
Constantius, who consulted him on all eccle- was exiled to lUyria (Soz. iv'. 24 ; Philost. v.
siastical matters, and did nothing without his i). On the accession of Jovian, a.d. 363, he
cognizance. He and George of Laodicea joined the other deposed bishops in petitioning
were now the recognized leaders of the semi- that emperor to expel the Anomoeans and
Arian party (Epiph. Haer. Ixxiii. i). The restore the rightful bishops but Basil seems
;

next year, a.d. 351, Basil took the chief part to have died in exile (Socr. iii. 25).
in the proceedings of the council that met at Athanasius speaks of his having written
Sirmium, where Constantius was residing, to Trepi wiareus (Athan. de Synod. M.S.). Ittigius
depose Photinus the pupil of Marcellus, who {de Haer. p. 453) defends him from the charge
was developing his master's views into direct of Arianism. Jerome identifies him, but un-
Sabellianism (ib. Ixxi. Ixxiii. ; Socr. ii. 30). justly, with the Macedonian party (Tillemont,
Shortly after this we find him attacking with vol. vi. passim). [e.v.]
equal vigour a heresy of an exactly opposite Basilius of Ancyra, a presbyter who became
character, disputing with Aetius, the Ano- a martyr under Julian a.d. 362. During the
moean, in conjunction with Eustathius of reign of Constantius he had been an uncom-
Sebaste, another leader of the semi-Arian promising opponent of Arianism. He was
party. The issue of the controversy is vari- more than once apprehended by the provin-
ously reported, according to the proclivities cial governors, but recovered his liberty. The
of the historians. Philostorgius (H. E. iii. Arian council under Eudoxius at Constanti-
16) asserts that Basil and Eustathius were nople in 360 forbade him to hold any eccle-
worsted by their antagonist orthodox writers siastical assembly. The zeal of Basil was still
;

assign them the victory (Greg. Nys. in further quickened by the attempts of Julian
Eunom. lib. i. pp. 289, 296). Basil's repre- to suppress Christianity. Sozomen tells us
116 BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT
that he visited the whole of the adjacent dis- the greater part of their lives. Athens also
trict, entreating the Christians ever3avhere to afforded Basil the opportunity of familiar
be constant to the faith and not to pollute intercourse with a fellow-student whose name
themselves with sacrifices to idols (Soz. H. E. was destined to become unhappily famous,
V. ii). He was apprehended and put to the the nephew of the emperor Constantius,
torture. On the arrival of Julian at Ancyra, Julian. The futil're emperor conceived a
Basil was presented to him, and after having warm attachment the young Cappado-
for
reproached the emperor with his apostasy was cian, with whom — as the latter reminds him
further tortured. Basil's constancy remained when the relations between them had so sadly
unshaken, and after a second interview with —
changed he not only studied the best models
Julian, in which he treated the emperor with of literature, but also carefully read the sacred
the greatest contumely, he suffered death by Scriptures (Epp. 40, 41 Greg. Naz. Orat. iv.
;

red-hot irons on June 29 (Soz. H. E. v. 11 ;


adv. Julian, pp. 121 seq.). Basil remained at
Ruinart, Act. Sine. Martyr, pp. 559 seq. ;
Athens till the middle or end of 355, when
Tillemont, vii. 375 seq.). [e-v.] with extreme reluctance he left for his native
BasiliUS, bp. of Caesarea in Cappadocia, city. By this time his father was dead.
commonly called Basil the Great, the His mother, Emmelia, was residing at the
strenuous champion of orthodoxy in the East, village of Annesi, near Neocaesarea. Basil's
the restorer of union to the divided Oriental Athenian reputation had preceded him, and
church, and the promoter of unity between he was received with much honour by the
the East and the West, was born at Caesarea people of Caesarea, where he consented to
(originally called Mazaca), the capital of Cap- settle as a teacher of rhetoric (Greg. Naz. Or.
padocia, towards the end of 329. His parents XX. p. 334). He practised the profession of a
were members of noble and wealthy families, rhetorician with great celebrity for a consider-
and Christians by descent. His grandparents able period (Rufin. ii. 9), but the warnings and
on both sides had suffered during the Maxi- counsels of Macrina guarded him from the
minian persecution, his maternal grandfather seductions of the world, and eventually in-
losing both property and life. Macrina, his duced him to abandon it altogether and
paternal grandmother, and her husband, were devote himself to a religious life (Greg. Nys.
compelled to leave their home in Pontus, of U.H.). Basil, in a letter to Eustathius of
which country they were natives, and to take Sebaste, describes himself at this period as
refuge among the woods and mountains of that one awaked out of a deep sleep, and in the
province, where they are reported to have marvellous light of Gospel truth discerning
passed seven years (Greg. Naz. Or. .xx. p. 319). the folly of that wisdom of this world in the
[Macrina.] His father, whose name was also study of which nearly all his youth had van-
Basil,was an advocate and teacher of rhetoric ished. His first care was to reform his life.
whose learning and eloquence had brought Finding, by reading the Gospels, that nothing
him a very large practice. Gregory Nazianzen tended so much toward perfection as to sell
speaks of this elder Basil in terms of the all that he had and free himself from worldly
highest commendation as one who was re- cares, and feeling himself too weak to stand
garded by the whole of Pontus as " the alone in such an enterprise, he desired earnestly
common instructor of virtue " (Or. xx. p. to find some brother who might give him his
324). The elder Basil and Emmelia had ten aid (Ep. 223). No sooner did his determina-
children, live of each sex, of whom a daughter, tion become known that he was beset by the
Macrina, was the eldest. Basil the Great was remonstrances of his friends entreating him,
the eldest son ; two others, Gregory Nyssen some to continue the profession of rhetoric,
and Peter, attained the episcopate. Naucra- some to become an advocate. But his choice
tius the second son died a layman. Four of was made, and his resolution was inflexible.
the daughters were well and honourably Basil's baptism may be placed at this epoch.
married. Macrina, the eldest, embraced a life He was probably baptized by Dianius, bp. of
of devotion, and exercised a very powerful Caesarea, by whom not long afterwards he
influence over Basil and the other members was admitted to the order of reader (de Spir.
of the family. [Macrina, (2).] Basil was Sancto, c. xxix. 71). Basil's determination
indebted for the care of his earliest years to in favour of a life of devotion would be
his grandmother Macrina, who brought him strengthened by the death of his next brother,
up at her country house, not far from Neo- Naucratius, who had embraced the life of a
caesarea in the province of Pontus (Bas. Ep. solitary, and about this period was drowned
210, § i). The date of Basil's baptism is while engaged in works of mercy (Greg. Nys.
uncertain, but, according to the prevalent cus- de Vtt. S. Macr. p. 182). About a.d. 357,
tom, it was almost certainly deferred until he when still under thirty, Basil left Caesarea to
reached man's estate. For the completion of seek the most celebrated ascetics upon whose
his education, Basil was sent by liis father life he might model his own; visiting Alex-
first to his native city of Caesarea (Greg. Naz. andria and Upper Egypt, Palestine, Coelesyria,
Or. XX. p. 325). From Caesarea he passed to and Mesopotamia. He records his admira-
Constantinople (Bas. Epp. 335-359 ; Liban. tion of the abstinence and endurance of the
Vita, p. 15), and thence to Athens, where he ascetics whom he met, their mastery over
studied during the years 351-355, chiefly under hunger and sleep, their indifference to cold
the Sophists Himerius and Prohaeresius. His and nakedness, as well as his desire to
acquaintance with his fellow-student and imitate them (Ep. 223, § 2). The year 358
inseparable companion Gregory Nazianzen, saw Basil again at Caesarea resolved on the
previously begun at Caesarea, speedily ripened immediate carrying out of his purpose of
at Athens into an ardent friendship, which sub- retiring from the world, finally selecting for
sisted with hardly any interruption through his retreat a spot near Neocaesarea, close to
BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT 117

the village of where his father's


Annesi, orthodox faith (Rufin. ix. 9 Soz. vi. 17 Greg.
; ;

estates lay, and where he had passed his Nys. de Basil, p. 488). Throughout Pontus and
childhood under the care of his grandmother Cappadocia Basil was the means of the erection
Macrina. To Annesi his mother Emmelia and of numerous hospitals for the poor, houses of
his sister Macrina had retired after the death refuge for virgins, orphanages, and other homes
of the elder Basil, and were living a semi- of beneficence. His monasteries had as their
monastic life. Basil's future home was only inmates children he had taken charge of,
divided from Annesi by the river Iris, by married persons who had mutually agreed to
which and the gorges of the mountain torrents live asunder, slaves with the consent of their
a tract of level ground was completely in- masters, and solitaries couvinced of the dangtr
sulated. A wooded mountain rose behind. of living alone (Basil, Regulae, 10, 12, 15).
There was only one approach to it, and of After two years thus spent Basil was sum-
that he was master. The natural beauties of moned from his solitude in 359 to accompany
the spot, with its ravines, precipices, dashing Basil of Ancyra and Eustathius of Sebaste.
torrents,and waterfalls, the purity of the air who had been delegated by the council of
and the coolness of the breezes, the abundance Seleucia to communicate the conclusions cf
of flowers and multitude of singing birds that assembly to Constantius at Constanti-
ravished him, and he declared it to be more nople. Basil seems from his youth and natural
beautiful than Calypso's island (Ep. 14). His timidity to have avoided taking any part in
glowing description attracted Gregory for a the discussions of the council that followed,
lengthy visit to study the Scriptures with him 360, in which the Anomoeans were condemned,
{Ep. 9), together with the commentaries of the more orthodox semi-Arians deposed, and
Origen and other early expositors. At this the Acacians triumphed. But when Con-
time they also compiled their collection of the stantius endeavoured to force those present
" Beauties of Origen," or " Philocalia" (Socr. to sign the creed of Ariminum, Basil left the
iv. 26 Soz. vi. 17
; Greg. Naz. Ep. 87).
; In this city and returned to Cappadocia (Greg. Nys.
secluded spot Basil passed five years, an epoch in Eunom. pp. 310, 312 ; Philost. iv. 12).
of no small importance in the history of the Not long after his return George of Laodicea
church, inasmuch as it saw the origin under arrived at Caesarea as an emissary of Con-
Basil's influence of the monastic system in the stantius, bringing with him that creed for
coenobitic form. Eustathius of Sebaste had signature. To Basil's intense grief, bp.
already introduced monachism into Asia Dianius, a gentle, undecided man, who valued
Minor, but monastic communities were a peace above orthodoxy, was persuaded to sign.
novelty in the Christian world, and of these Basil felt it impossible any longer to hold
Basil is justly considered the founder. His communion with his bishop, and fled to
rule, like that of St. Benedict in later times, Nazianzus to find consolation in the society
united active industry with regular devotional of his dear friend Gregory {Ep. 8, 51). He
exercises, and by the labour of his monks over denied with indignation the report that he
wide desert tracts, hopeless sterility gave place had anathematized his bishop, and when two
to golden harvests and abundant vintages. years afterwards (362) Dianius was stricken
Not the day only but the night also was for death and entreated Basil to return and
divided into definite portions, the intervals comfort his last hours, he at once went to him.
being filled with prayers, hymns, and alternate and the aged bishop died in his arms.
psalmody. The day began and closed with The choice of Dianius's successor gave rise
a psalm of confession. The food of his monks to violent dissensions at Caesarea. At last
was limited to one meal a day of bread, water, the populace, wearied with the indecision,
and herbs, and he allowed sleep only till chose Eusebius, a man of high position and
midnight, when all rose for prayer {Ep. 2, eminent piety, but as yet unbaptized. They
207). On his retirement to Pontus, Basil forcibly conveyed him to the church where the
devoted all his worldly possessions to the provincial bishops were assembled, and com-
service of the poor, retaining them, however, pelled the unwilling prelates first to baptize
in his own hands, and by degrees divesting and then to consecrate him. Eusebius was
himself of them as occasion required. His bp. at Caesarea for 8 years (Greg. Naz. Or.
life was one of the most rigid asceticism. He xix. 308, 309).
had but one outer and one inner garment he ; Shortly before the death of Dianius, Julian
slept in a hair shirt, his bed was the ground ;
had ascended the throne (Dec. 11, 361), and
he took little sleep, no bath the sun was his
; desired to surround himself with the associates
fire, his food bread and water, his drink the of his early days (Greg. Naz. Or. iv. 120).
running stream (Greg. Naz. Or. xx. p. 358 ;
Among the first whom he invited was his
Greg. Nys. de Basil, p. 490). The severe fellow-student at Athens, Basil. Basil at
bodily austerities he practised emaciated his first held out hopes of accepting his old friend's
frame and ruined his already feeble health, invitation ; but he dela^-ed his journey, and
sowing the seeds of the maladies to which in Julian's declared apostasy soon gave him
later years he was a martyr. His friend sufficient cause to relinquish it altogether.
describes him as " without a wife, without The next year Julian displayed his irritation.
property, without flesh, and almost without Receiving intelligence that the people of
blood" (Greg. Naz. Or. xix. p. 311). Basil's Caesarea, so far from apostatizing with him
reputation for sanctity collected large numbers and building new pagan temples, had pulled
about him. He repeatedly made missionary down the only one still standing ((>reg. Naz.
journeys through Pontus his preaching result-
; Or. iii. 91, xix. 309 Socr. v. 4), he expunged
;

ing in the founding of many coenobitic in- Caesarea from the catalogue of cities, made
dustrial communities and monasteries for both it take its old name of Mazaca, imposed heavy
sexes, and in the restoration of the purity of the payments, compelled tiie clergy to serve in the
118 BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT
police force, and put to death two young men Eusebius died towards the middle of 370
of high rank who had taken part in the in Basil's arms (Greg. Naz. Or. xix. 310,
demolition of the temple. Approaching XX. 342). Basil persuaded himself, not alto-
Caesarea, he dispatched a minatory letter to gether unwarrantably, that the cause of
Basil demanding a thousand pounds of gold orthodoxy in Asia Minor was involved in
for the expenses of his Persian expedition, his succeeding Eusebius. Disappointed of
or threatening to rase the city to the ground. the assistance anticipated from the younger
Basil, in his dauntless reply, upbraids the em- Gregory, Basil betook himself to his father,
peror for apostasy against God and the church, the aged bp. of Nazianzus of the same name.
the nurse and mother of all, and for his folly in The momentous importance of the juncture
demanding so vast a sum from him, the poorest was more evident to the elder man. Orthodoxy
of the poor. The death of Julian (June 26, was at stake in Basil's election. " The Holy
363) delivered Basil from this imminent peril. Spirit must triumph " (Greg. Naz. Or. xx. 342).
One of the first acts of bp. Eusebius was to Using his son as his scribe, he dictated a letter
compel the reluctant Basil to be ordained to the clergy, monks, magistrates, and people
priest, that the bishop might avail himself of of Caesarea, calling on them to choose Basil ;

Basil's theological knowledge and intellectual another to the electing prelates, exhorting
powers to compensate for his own deficiencies. them not to allow Basil's weakness of health
At first he employed him very largely. But to counterbalance his marked pre-eminence
when he found himself completely eclipsed he in spiritual gifts and in learning (Greg. Naz.
became jealous of Basil's popularity and Ep. 22, 23). No orthodox prelate had at that
treated him with a marked coldness, amount- time a deservedly greater influence than
ing almost to insolence, which awoke the Eusebius of Samosata. Gregory wrote to him
hostility of the Christians of Caesarea, whose and persuaded him to visit Caesarea and
idol Basil was. A schism was iniminent, but undertake the direction of this difficult busi-
Basil, refusing to strengthen the heretical ness (Bas. Ep. 47). On his arrival, Eusebius
party by creating divisions among the ortho- found the city divided into two opposite
dox, retired with his friend Gregory to Pontus, factions. All the best of the people, together
where he devoted himself to the care of the with the clergy and the monks, warmly advo-
monasteries he had founded (Greg. Naz. Or. cated Basil's election, which was vigorously
XX. pp. 336, 337 ;
Soz. vi. 15). opposed by other classes. The influence and
Basil had passed about three years in his tact of Eusebius overcame all obstacles. The
Pontic seclusion when, in 365, the blind zeal people warmly espoused Basil's cause ; the
of the emperor Valens for the spread of bishops were compelled to give way, and the
Arianism brought him back to Caesarea. As triumph of the orthodox cause was consum-
soon as it was known that Valens was ap- mated by the arrival of the venerable Gregory,
proaching that city, the popular voice de- who, on learning that one vote was wanting
manded the recall of Basil as the only bulwark for the canonical election of Basil, while his
against the attack on the true faith and its son was still hesitating full of scruples and
adherents meditated by the emperor. Greg- refused to quit Nazianzus, left his bed for a
ory acted the part of a wise mediator, and litter, had himself carried to Caesarea at the
Basil's return to the bishop was effected (Greg. risk of expiring on the way, and with his own
Naz. Ep. 19, 20, 169 ; Or. xx. p. 339). Treat- hands consecrated the newly elected prelate,
ing Eusebius with the honour due to his and placed him on his episcopal throne (Greg.
position and his age, Basil now proved him- Naz. Ep. 29, p. 793, Or. xix. 311, xx. 343).
self, in the words of Gregory, the staff of his Basil's election filled the orthodox everywhere
age, the support of his faith ; at home the with joy. Athanasius, the veteran champion
most faithful of his friends abroad the most
; of the faith, congratulated Cappadocia on
efficient of his ministers (ib. 340). possessing a bishop whom every province
The first designs of Valens against Caesarea might envy (Ath. ad. Pallad. p. 953, ad
were interrupted by the news of the revolt of Joann. et Ant. p. 951). At Constantinople it
Procopius (Amm. Marc. 26, 27). He left was received with far different feelings.
Asia to quell the insurrection which threatened Valens regarded it as a serious check to his
his throne. Basil availed himself of the designs for the triumph of Arianism. Basil
breathing-time thus granted in organizing the was not an opponent to be despised. He
resistance of the orthodox against the Eunc- must be bent to the emperor's will or got rid
mians or Anomoeans, who were actively pro- of. As bp. of Caesarea his power extended
pagating their pernicious doctrines through farbeyond the limits of the city itself. He
Asia Minor ; and in uniting the Cappadocians was metropolitan of Cappadocia, and exarch
in loyal devotion to the truth. The year 368 of Pontus. In the latter capacity his author-
afforded Basil occasion of displaying his large ity, or less defied, extended over more
more
and universal charity. The whole of Cappa- than half Asia Minor, and embraced as many
docia was desolated by drought and famine, as eleven provinces. Ancyra, Neocaesarea,
the visitation pressing specially on Caesarea. Tyana, with other metropolitan sees, acknow-
Basil devoted his whole energies to helping ledged him as their ecclesiastical superior.
the poor sufferers. He sold the property he Basil's first disappointment in his episcopate
had inherited at the recent death of his arose from his inability to induce his dear
mother, and raised a large subscription in the friend Gregory to join him as his coadjutor in
city. He gave his own personal ministrations the government of his province and exarchate.
to the wretched, and while he fed their bodies He consented at last for a while, but soon with-
he was careful to nourish their souls with the drew. Difficulties socm thickened round the
bread of life (Greg. Naz. Or. xx. 340-342 ;
new exarch. The bishops who had opposed his
Greg. Nys. in Eunom. i. 306). election and refused to take part in his con-
BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT 119

secration, now exchanged their open hostility mercy, as it would the sooner transport him
for secret opposition. While professing out- to the God to Whom he lived. Modestus
ward union, they withheld their support in expressed his astonishment at hearing such
everything. They treated Basil with marked unusual language (Greg. Naz. Or. xx. 351 ;

slight and shewed a complete want of sym- Soz. vi. 16). " That is," replied Basil,
pathy in all his plans {Ep. 98). He complains " because you have never before fallen in
of this to Eusebius ofSamosata {Epp. 48, 141, with a true bishop." Modestus, finding his
282). This disloyal behaviour caused him menaces useless, changed his tone. He
despondency and repeated attacks of illness. counselled prudence. Basil should avoid
He overcame all his opponents in a few years irritating the emperor, and submit to his
by firmness and kindness, but their action had requirements, as all the other prelates of Asia
greatly increased the difficulties of the com- had done. If he would only yield he promised
mencement of his episcopate. him the friendship of Valens, and whatever
Basil had been bishop little more than favours he might desire for his friends. Why
twelve months when he was brought into open should he sacrifice all his power for the sake
collisionwith the emperor Valens, who was of a few doctrines ? (Theod. iv. 19). But flat-
traversing Asia Minor with the fixed resolve tery had as little power as threats over Basil's
of exterminating the orthodox faith and iron will. The prefect was at his wit's end.
establishing Arianism. No part of Basil's Valens was expected on the morrow. Modes-
history is better known, and in none do we tus was unwilling to meet the emperor with a
more clearly discern the strength and weak- report of failure. The aspect of a court of
ness of his character. " The memorable inter- justice with its official state and band of
view with St. Basil," writes Dean Milman, ministers prepared to execute its sentence
" as it is related by the Catholic party, dis- might inspire awe. But judicial terrors were
plays, if the weakness, certainly the patience equally futile (Greg. Nys. in Eunom. p. 315).

and toleration of the sovereign if the uncom- Modestus, utterly foiled, had to announce to
promising firmness of the prelate, some of that his master that all his attempts to obtain sub-
leaven of pride with which he is taunted by mission had been fruitless. " Violence would
St. Jerome " {Hist, of Christianity, iii. 45). be the only course to adopt with one over
Valens had never relinquished the designs whom threats and blandishments were equally
which had been interrupted by the revolt of powerless " (Greg. Naz. Or. xx. p. 350). Such
Procopius, and he was now approaching Christian intrepidity was not without effect on
Caesarea determined to reduce to submission the feeble, impressionable mind of Valens. He
the chief champion of orthodoxy in the East. refused to sanction any harsh measures against
His progress hitherto had been one of uniform the archbishop, and moderated his demands to
victory. The Catholics had everywhere fallen the admission of Arians to Basil's communion.
before him. Bithynia had resisted and had But here too Basil was equally inflexible. To
become the scene of horrible tragedies. The bring matters to a decided issue, the emperor
fickle Galatia had yielded without a struggle. presented himself in the chief church of Cae-
The fate of Cappadocia depended on Basil. sarea on the Epiphany, a.d. 372, after the
His house, as the emperor drew near, was service had commenced. He found the church
besieged by ladies of rank, high personages of flooded with " a sea " of worshippers whose
state, even by bishops, who entreated him to chanted psalms pealed forth like thunder,
bow before the storm and appease the emperor uninterrupted by the entrance of the emperor
by a temporary submission. Their expostula- and his train. Basil was at the altar celebrat-
tions were rejected with indignant disdain. A ing the Eucharistic sacrifice, standing, accord-
band of Arian bishops headed by Euippius, an ing to the primitive custom, behind the altar
aged bishop of Galatia and an old friend of with his face to the assembled people, sup-
Basil's, preceded Valens's arrival with the ported on either hand by the semicircle of his
hope of overawing their opponents by their attendant clergy. " The unearthly majesty
numbers and unanimity. Basil took the of the scene," the rapt devotion of the arch-
initiative, and with prompt decision separated bishop, erect like a column before the holy
himself from their communion (Bas. Epp. 68, table, the reverent order of the immense
128, 244, 251). Members of the emperor's throng, " more like that of angels than of
household indulged in the most violent men- men," overpowered the weak and excitable
aces against the archbishop. One of the most Valens, and he almost fainted away. When
insolent of these was the eunuch Demosthenes, the time came for making his offering, and the
the superintendent of the kitchen. Basil met ministers were hesitating whether they should
his threats with quiet irony, and was next receive an oblation from the hand of a heretic,
confronted by Modestus, the prefect of the his limbs failed him, and but for the aid of one
Praetorium, commissioned by the emperor to of the clergy he would have fallen. Basil, it
offer Basil the choice between deposition or would seem, pitying his enemy's weakness,
communion with the Arians. This violent and accepted the gift from his trembling hand (ib.
unscrupulous imperial favourite accosted Basil p. 351). The next day Valens again visited
with the grossest insolence. He refused him the church, and listened with reverence to
the title of bishop he threatened confiscation,
; Basil's preaching, and made his offerings,
exile, tortures, death. But such menaces, which were not now rejected. The sermon
Basil replied, were powerless on one whose over, Basil admitted the emperor within the
sole wealth was a ragged cloak and a few sacred veil, and discoursed on the orthodox
books, to whom the whole earth was a home, faith. He was rudely interrupted by the
or rather a place of pilgrimage, whose feeble cook Demosthenes, who was guilty of a gross
body could endure no tortures beyond the solecism. Basil smiled and said, " We have,
first stroke, and to whom death would be a it seems, a Demosthenes who cannot speak
120 BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT
Greek; he had better attend to his sauces repressed. The chorepiscopi had admitted
than meddle with theology." The retort men to the lower orders who had no intention
amused the emperor, who retired so well of proceeding to the priesthood, or even to the
pleased with his theological opponent that he diaconate, but merely to gain immunity from
made him a grant of lands for the poor-house military service (Ep. 54). Many of his suffra-
Basil was erecting (Theod. iv. 19 ;Greg. Naz. gans were guilty of simony in receiving a fee
Or. XX. 351 ;Bas. Ep. 94). The vacillating for ordination (Ep. 55). Men were raised to
mind of Valens was always influenced by the the episcopate from motives of personal in-
latest and most imperious advisers, and when terest and to gratify private friends (Ep. 290).
Basil remained firm in his refusal to admit The perilous custom of unmarried priests
them to his communion, the Arians about the having females (cvveiaaKTai, subintroduciae)
emperor had little difficulty in persuading him residing with them as " spiritual sisters "
that he was compromising the faith by per- called for reproof (Ep. 55). A fanatic deacon,
mitting Basil to remain, and that his banish- Glycerius, who had collected a band of pro-
ment was necessary for the peace of the East. fessed virgins, whom he forcibly carried off
The emperor, yielding to their importunity, by night and who wandered about the country
ordered Basil to leave the city. Basil at once dancing and singing to the scandal of the
made his simple preparations for departure, faithful, caused him much trouble (Epp. 169,
ordering one of his attendants to take his 170, 171). To heal the fountain-head, Basil
tablets and follow him. He was to start at made himself as far as possible master of
night to avoid the risk of popular disturbance. episcopal elections, and steadily refused to
The chariot was at his door, and his friends, admit any he deemed unworthy of the office.
Gregory among them, were bewailing so great So high became the reputation of his clergy
a calamity, when his journey was arrested by that other bishops sent to him for presbyters
the sudden and alarming illness of Galates, to become their coadjutors and successors
the only son of Valen and Dominica. The (Ep. 81). Marriage with a deceased wife's
empress attributed her child's danger to the sister he denounced as prohibited by the laws
Divine displeasure at the treatment of Basil. both of Scripture and nature (Ep. 1 60) Feeble
.

The emperor, in abject alarm, sent the chief as was his health, his activity was unceasing.
military officials of the court, Terentius and He visited every part of his exarchate, and
Arinthaeus, who were known to be his friends, maintained a constant intercourse by letter
to entreat Basil to come and pray over the with confidential friends, who kept him in-
sick child. Galates was as yet unbaptized. formed of all that passed and were ready to
On receiving a promise that the child should carry out his instructions. He pushed his
receive that sacrament at the hands of a episcopal activity to the very frontiers of
Catholic bishop and be instructed in the Armenia. In 372 he made an expedition by
orthodox faith, Basil consented. He prayed the express command of Valens, obtained by
over the boy, and the malady was alleviated. the urgency of his fast friend count Terentius,
On his retiring, the Arians again got round the to strengthen the episcopate in that country
feeble prince, reminded him of a promise he by appointing fresh bishops and infusing fresh
had made to Eudoxius, by whom he himself life into existing ones (Ep. 99). He was very
had been baptized, and the child received diligent in preaching, not only at Caesarea and
baptism from the hands of an Arian prelate. other cities, but in country villages. The
He grew immediately worse, and died the details of public worship occupied his atten-
same night (Greg. Naz. Or. xx. 352, 364 ;
tion. Even while a presbyter he arranged
Theod. iv. 19 ; Socr. iv. 26; Soz. iv. 16
;
forms of prayer (evx^^v Stard^eis), probably
Eph. Syr. apiid Coteler. Monum. Eccl. Graec. a liturgy, for the church of Caesarea (Greg.
iii. 63 ;Rufin. xi. 9). Once more Valens Naz. Or. xx. 340). He established nocturnal
yielded to pressure from the unwearied services, in which the psalms were chanted by
enemies of Basil. Again Basil's exile was alternate choirs, which, as a novelty, gave
determined on, but the pens with which Valens great offence to the clergy of Neocaesarea (Ep.
was preparing to sign the decree refused to 207). These incessant labours were carried
write, and split in his agitated hand, and the out by one who, naturally of a weak constitu-
supposed miracle arrested the execution of the tion, had so enfeebled himself by austerities
sentence. Valens left Caesarea, and Basil re- that " when called well, he was weaker than
mained master of the situation (Theod. iv. 19 ;
persons who are given over " (Ep. 136). His
Ephr. Syr. u.s. p. 65). Before long his old chief malady, a disease of the liver, caused him
enemy Modestus, attacked by a severe malady, repeated and protracted sufferings, often
presented himself as a suppliant to Basil, and hindering him travelling, the least motion
attributing his cure to the intercessions of the bringing on a relapse (Ep. 202). The severity
saint, became his fast friend. So great was of winter often kept him a prisoner to his house
Basil's influence with the prefect that persons and often even to his room (Ep. 27). A
letter
came from a distance to secure his intercession from Eusebius of Samosata arrived when he
with him. We have as many as six letters had been 50 days ill of a fever. " He was
from Basil to Modestus in favour of different eager to fly straight to Syria, but he was un-
individuals (Bas. Epp. 104, no, 111,279,280, equal to turning in his bed. He hoped for
281 ;Greg. Naz. Or. xx. pp. 352, 353). relief from the hot springs" (Ep. 138). He
The issue of these unsuccessful assaults was suffered " sickness upon sickness, so that his
to place Basil in a position of inviolability, and shell must certainly fail unless God's mercy
to leave him leisure for administering his extricate him from evils beyond man's cure "
diocese and exarchate, which much needed his (Ep. 136). At 45 he calls himself an old man.
firm and unflinching hand. His visitation The next year he had lost all his teeth. Three
disclosed many irregularities which he sternly years before his death all remaining hope of
BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT 121

life had left him (Ep.


198). He
died, pre- he could only have maintained at the risk
maturely aged, at 50. Seldom did a spirit of of continual conflict, and even bloodshed.
so indomitable activity reside in so feeble a [Gregory Nazianzen Anthimus.] A peace
;

frame, and, triumphing over weakness, make was ultimately patched up, apparently
it the instrument of such vigorous work for through the intercession of Gregory and the
Christ and His church. mediation of Eusebius of Samosata and the
In 372 a harassing dispute with Anthimus, senate of Tyana. Anthimus was recognised
bp. of Tyana, touching ecclesiastical juris- as metropolitan of the new province, each
diction, led to the chief personal sorrow of province preserving its own revenues (Bas.
Basil's life, the estrangement of the friend of Epp. 97, 98, 122). Gregory attributed Basil's
his youth, Gregory of Nazianzus. The cir- action to a high sense of duty, but could never
cumstances were these. Towards the close of forget that he had sacrificed his friend to that,
371 Valens determined to divide Cappadocia and the wound inflicted on their mutual
into two provinces. Podandus, a miserable attachment was never healed, and even after
little town at the foot of mount Taurus, was Basil's death Gregory reproaches him with his
at first named as the chief city of the new unfaithfulness to thelaws of friendship. "This
province, to which a portion of the executive lamentable occurrence took place seven years
was to be removed. The inhabitants of before Basil's death. He had before and after
Caesarea entreated Basil to go to Constanti- it many trials, many sorrows but this prob-
;

nople and petition for the rescinding of the ably was the greatest of all " (Newman,
edict. His weak health prevented this, but Church of the Fathers, p. 144).
he wrote to Sophronius, a native of Caesarea The Ptochotropheion, or hospital for the
in a high position at court, and to Aburgius, a reception and rtlief of the poor, which Basil
man of influence there, begging them to use had erected in the suburbs of Caesarea,
all their power to alter the emperor's decision. afforded his untiring enemies a pretext for
They could not prevent the division of the denouncing him to Helias, the new president
province, but did obtain the substitution of of the province. This establishment, which
Tyana for Podandus (is/j^. 74-76). Anthimus was so extensive as to go by the name of
thereupon insisted that the ecclesiastical divi- the " New Town," i] Kaivrj ttoXis (Greg. Naz. Or.
sion should follow the civil, and claimed XX. and subsequently the " Basileiad "
p. 359),
metropolitan rights over several of Basil's after its founder (Soz. vi. 34), included a
suffragans. Basil appealed to ancient usage church, a palace for the bishop, and resi-
in vain. Anthimus called a council of the dences for his clergy and their attendant min-
bishops who had opposed Basil's election and isters ;hospices for the poor, sick, and way-
were ready to exalt his rival. By flattery, farers and workshops for the artisans and
;

intimidation, and even the removal of oppo- labourers whose services were needed, in
nents, Anthimus strengthened his faction. which the inmates also might learn and
Basil's authority was reduced to a nullity in practise various trades. There was a special
one-half of his province (Greg. Naz. Or. xx. department for lepers, with arrangements for
355 Epp. 31, 33
; Bas. Ep. 259).
; Basil their proper medical treatment, and on these
appealed to his friend Gregory, who replied loathsome objects Basil lavished his chief
that he would come to his assistance, though personal ministrations. By such an enor-
Basil wanted him no more than the sea wanted mous establishment Basil, it was hinted, was
water. He warned Basil that his difficulties aiming at undue power and infringing on
were increased by the suspicions created by the rights of the civil authorities. But Basil
his intimacy with Eustathius of Sebaste and adroitly parried the blow by reminding the
his friends, whose reputation for orthodoxy governor that apartments were provided in
was more than doubtful (Greg. Naz. Ep. 25). the building for him and his attendants, and
On Gregory's arrival the two friends started suggesting that the glory of so magnificent
together for the monastery of St. Orestes on an architectural work would redound to him
mount Taurus, in the second Cappadocia, the (Ep. 84).
property of the see of Caesarea, to collect the Far more harassing and more lasting
produce of the estate. This roused Anthi- troubles arose to Basil from the double dealing
mus's indignation, and despite his advanced of Eustathius, the unprincipled and time-
age, he occupied the defile, through which the serving bp. of Sebaste. [Eustathius of
pack-mules had to pass, with his armed re- Sebaste.] Towards the middle of June
tainers. A
serious affray resulted, Gregory 372, the venerable Theodotus, bp. of Nico-
fighting bravely in his friend's defence (Greg. polis, a metropolitan of Lesser Armenia, a
Naz. Or. xx. 356; Ep. 31, Cartn. i. 8). Basil prelate of high character and unblemished
erected several new bishoprics as defensive orthodoxy, deservedly respected by Basil,
outposts against his rival. One of these was had invited him to a festival at Phargamon
near St. Orestes at Sasima, a wretched little near his episcopal see. Meletius of Antioch,
posting-station and frontier custom-house at then in exile in Armenia, was also to be there.
the junction of three great roads, hot, dry, and Sebaste was almost on the road between
dusty, vociferous with the brawls of muleteers, Caesarea and Nicopolis, and Basil, aware of
travellers, and excisemen. Here Basil, dis- the suspicion entertained by Theodotus of
regarding Gregory's delicate temperament, the orthodoxy of Eustathius, determined to
determined to place him as bishop. Gregory's stop there on his way, and demand a definite
weaker character bowed to Basil's iron will, statement of his faith. Many hours were
and he was most reluctantly consecrated. spent on fruitless discussion until, at three
But Anthimus appointed a rival bishop, and in the afternoon of the second day, a sub-
Gregory took the earliest opportunity of stantial agreement appeared to have been
escaping from the unwelcome position which attained. To remove all doubt of his ortho-
122 BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT
doxy, Basil requested Theodotus to draw up at that time both were laymen, and that it
a formulary of faith for Eustathius to sign. was merely a friendly letter not dealing with
To his mortification not only was his request theological points, and that ApoUinaris had
refused, but Theodotus plainly intimated that not then developed his heretical views and
he had now no wish for Basil's visit. While stood high in the esteem of Athanasius. But
hesitating whether he should still pursue his its circulation served Eustathius's ends in
journey, Basil received letters from his friend strengthening the suspicion already existing
Eusebius of Samosata, stating his inability to against Basil as a favourer of false doctrine4
come and join him. This at once decided The letter as published by Eustathius had been
him. Without Eusebius's help he felt himself disgracefully garbled, and was indignantly
unequal to face the controversies his presence repudiated by Basil. By a most shameful
at Nicopolis would evoke, and he returned artifice some heretical expressions of Apol-
home sorrowing that his labours for the peace linaris, without the author's name, had been
of the church were unavailing [Epp. 98, 99). appended to Eustathius's own letter accom-
A few months later the sensitive orthodoxy panying that attributed to Basil, leading to
of Theodotus prepared another mortification the supposition that they were ISasil's own.
for Basil. In carrying out the commands of Basil was overwhelmed with distress at being
Valens, mentioned above, to supply Armenia represented in such false colours to the church,
with bishops, the counsel and assistance of while the ingratitude and treachery of his
Theodotus as metropolitan was essential. As former friend stung him deeply. He restrained
a first step towards cordial co-operation, Basil himself, however, from any public expression
sought a conference with Theodotus at Getasa, of his feelings, maintaining a dignified silence
the estate of Meletius of Antioch, in whose for three years (Bas. Epp. 128, 130, 224, 225,
presence he made him acquainted with what 226, 244). During this period of intense trial
had passed between him and Eustathius at Basil was much comforted in 374 by the ap-
Sebaste, and his acceptance of the orthodox pointment of his youthful friend Amphilo-
faith. Theodotus replied that Eustathius had CHius to the see of Iconium. But the same
denied that he had come to any agreement year brought a severe blow in the banishment
with Basil. To bring the matter to an issue, of his intimate and confidential counsellor
Basil again proposed that a confession of Eusebius of Samosata. At the end of this
faith should be prepared, on his signing which period (375) Basil, impelled by the calumnies
his future communion with Eustathius would heaped upon him on every side, broke a silence
depend. This apparently satisfied Theodotus, which he considered no longer safe, as tending
who invited Basil to visit him and inspect his to compromise the interests of truth, and
church, and promised to accompany him on published a long letter nominally addressed
his journey into Armenia. But on Basil's to Eustathius, but really a document intended
arrival at Nicopolis he spurned him with for the faithful, in which he briefly reviews the
horror (e/SSeXi'/^aro) as an excommunicated history of his life, describes his former intimacy
person, and refused to join him at either with Eustathius, and the causes which led to
morning or evening prayer. Thus deserted the rupture between them, and defends him-
by one on whose co-operation he relied, Basil self from the charges of impiety and blasphemy
had little heart to prosecute his mission, but so industriously circulated (Bas. Epp. 223, 226,
he continued his journey to Satala, where he 244). It was time indeed that Basil should
consecrated a bishop, established discipline, take some public steps to clear his reputation
and promoted peace among the prelates of from the reckless accusations which were
the province. Basil well knew how to dis- showered upon him. He was called a Sabel-
tinguish between his busy detractors and one lian, an Apollinarian, a Tritheist, a Mace-
like Theodotus animated with zeal for the donian, and his efforts in behalf of orthodoxy
orthodox faith. Generously overlooking his in the East were continually thwarted in every
former rudenesses, he reopened communica- direction by the suspicion with which he was
tions with him the following year, and visiting regarded. Athanasius, bp. of Ancyra, misled
Nicopolis employed his assistance in once more by the heretical writings that had been fath-
drawing up an elaborate confession of faith ered upon him, spoke in the harshest terms
embodying the Nicene Creed, for Eustathius of him {Ep. 25). The bishops of the district
to sign (Bas. Ep. 125). Eustathius did so in of Dazimon in Pontus, giving ear to Eusta-
the most formal manner in the presence of thius's calumnies, separated themselves from
witnesses, whose names are appended to the his communion, and suspended all intercourse,
document. But no sooner had this slippery and were only brought back to their allegiance
theologian satisfied the requirements of Basil by a letter of Basil's, written at the instance
than he threw off the mask, broke his promise of all the bishops of Cappadocia, characterized
to appear at a synodical meeting called by by the most touching humility and affection-
Basil to seal the union between them and ateness {Ep. 203). The alienation of his rela-
their respective adherents, and openly assailed tive Atarbius and the church of Neocaesarea,
him with the most unscrupulous invectives of which he was bishop, was more difficult to
{Epp. 130, 244). He went so far as to hold redress. To be regarded with suspicion by
assemblies in which Basil was charged with the church of a place so dear to himself, his
heterodox views, especially on the Divinity of residence in youth, and the home of many
the Holy Spirit, and with haughty and over- members of his family, especially his sainted
bearing behaviour towards his chorepiscopi grandmother, Macrina, was peculiarly painful.
and other suffragans. At last Eustathius But the tendency of the leading Neocaesareans
pushed matters so far as to publish a letter was Sabellian, and the emphasis with which
written by Basil twenty-five years before to he was wont to assert the distinctness of the
the heresiarch ApoUinaris. It was true that Three Persons was offensive to them. They
BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT 123

took umbrage also at the favour he shewed to of the episcopate by ambition and covetous-
monasticism, and the nocturnal services he ness, rival bishops rending asunder the vener-
had established. Basil wrote in terms of able church of Antioch, Christians wasting
affectionate expostulation to them, and took in mutual strife the strength that should have
advantage of the existence of his brother been spent in combating the common foe,
Peter's monastic community at Annesi to pay feeling himself utterly insufficient in his
the locality a visit. But as soon as he was isolation to work the reformation he desired,
known to be in the neighbourhood a strange Basil had looked round eagerly for effectual
panic seized the whole city ;some fled, some aid and sympathy. He naturally turned
hid themselves ;Basil was everywhere de- first to that " great and apostolic soul who
nomced as a public enemy. Atarbius abrupt- from boyhood had been an athlete in the
ly *ft the synod at Nicopolis on hearing of cause of religion," the great Athanasius (Epp.
Basil's approach. Basil returned, mortified 69, 80, 83). In the year 371 he begged his
and distressed (Epp. 126, 204, 207, 210). Be- assistance in healing the unhappy schism of
sides other charges Basil was widely accused of Antioch by inducing the Western Church to
denying the proper divinity of the Holy Spirit. recognize Meletius, and persuading Paulinus
This charge, which, when made by some Cap- to withdraw. He called on him to stir up
padocian monks, had been already sternly the orthodox of the East by his letters, and
reproved by Athanasius (Ath. ad. Pall. ii. cry aloud like Samuel for the churches (Epp.
763, 764), was revived at a later time on the 66, 69). In his request about Antioch, Basil
plea that he had used a form of the doxology " was inviting Athanasius to what was in fact
open to suspicion, " Glory be to the Father, impossible even to the influence and talents
through the Son, in the Holy Spirit " * (de of the primate of Egypt for being committed
;

Spir. Sanct. c. i, vol. iii. p. 3). Self-defence to one side in the dispute he could not mediate
was again reluctantly forced on the victim of between them. Nothing then came of the
calumny. He prayed that he might be de- application " (J. H. Newman, Church of the
serted by the Holy Ghost for ever if he did Fathers, p. 105). Basil had other requests to
not adore Him as equal in substance and in urge on Athanasius. He was very desirous
honour {b/xoouaiov /cat o/xotl/xov) with the that a deputation of Western prelates should
Father and the Son (Greg. Naz. Or. xx. 365). be sent to help him in combating the Eastern
Similar charges made at the festival of St. heretics and reuniting the orthodox, whose
Eupsychius in 374 led Amphilochius to re- authority should overawe Valens and secure
quest him to declare his views, which he the recognition of their decrees. He asked
did in his treatise de Spiritu Sancto (§ i ;
also for the summoning of a council of all the
Ep. 231). Maligned, misrepresented, regarded West to confirm the decrees of Nicaea, and
with suspicion, thwarted, opposed on all annul those of Ariminum (Epp. 66, 69).
hands, few champions of the faith have had Basil next addressed himself to the Western
a heavier burden to bear than Basil. The churches. His first letter in 372 was written
history of the Eastern church at this period is to Damasus, bp. of Rome, lamenting the
indeed little more than a history of his trials heavy storm under which almost the whole
and sufferings. But his was not a nature to Eastern church was labouring, and entreating
give way before difficulties the most tremen- of his tender compassion, as the one remedy
dous and failures the most disheartening. The of its evils, that either he, or persons like-
great object he had set before himself was minded with him, would personally visit the
the restoration of orthodoxy to the Eastern East with the view of bringing the churches
church, and the cementing of its disorganized of God to unity, or at least determining with
fragments into one compact body capable of whom the church of Rome should hold com-
withstanding the attacks of hostile powers. munion (Ep. 70). Basil's letters were con-
This object he pursued with undaunted per- veyed to Athanasius and Damasus by Doro-
severance, notwithstanding his feeble health, theus, a deacon of Antioch, in communion
" which might rather be called the languor with Meletius. He returned by way of Alex-
of a dying man." Cut to the heart by andria in company with a deacon named
the miserable spectacle which surrounded Sabinus (afterwards bp. of Piacenza) as bearer
him, the persecution of the orthodox, the of the replies of the Western prelates. These
triumphs of false doctrine, the decay of piety, replies were full of expressions of sympathy,
the worldliness of the clergy, the desecration but held out no definite prospect of practical
help. Something, however, was hoped from
* Cf. Hooker, Eccl. Pol. V. xlii. 12, " Till
Arianism had made it a matter of great sharp- the effect of Sabinus's report on his return to
ness and subtilty of wit to be a sound believing the West, as an ej-e-witness of the lamentable
Christian, men were not curious what syllables condition of the Eastern church. Sabinus
or particles of speech they used. Upon which was charged with several letters on his return
when St. Basil began to practise the like indif- to Italy. One, bearing the signatures of
ferency,and to conclude public prayers, glorifying thirty-two Eastern bishops, including besides
sometime the Father uith the Son and the Holy
Basil, Meletius of Antioch, Eusebius of Samo-
Ghost, sometime the Father by the Son in the Spirit,
whereas long custom had inured them to the former sata, Gregory Nyssen, etc., was addressed to
kind alone, by means whereof the latter was new the bishops of Italy and Gaul another was
;

and strange in their ears his needless experiment


; written in Basil's own name to the bishops of
brought afterwards upon him a necessary labour of the West generally. There were also private
excusing himself to his friends and maintaining his
own act against them, who because the light of his letters to Valerian of Aquileia and others.
candle too much drowned theirs, were glad to lay These letters gave a most distressing picture
hold on so colourable a matter, and exceedingly of the state of the East. " Men had learnt
forward to traduce him as an author of suspicious to be theorists instead of theologians. The
innovation." true shepherds were driven away. Grievous

124 BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT


wolves, spoiling the flock, were brought in effectual, Basil's tone respecting Damasus
instead. The houses of prayer were destitute and the Western prelates changed. He began
of preachers, the deserts full of mourners. to suspect the real cause of the apathy with
The faithful laity avoided the churches as which his entreaties for aid had been received,
schools of impiety. Priestly gravity had and to feel that no relief could be hoped from
perished. There was no restraint on sin. their " Western superciliousness " (r?)? Si'ti/ctjs
Unbelievers laughed, the weak were unsettled. 6(f)pvos), and that it was in vain to send emis-
. . Let them hasten to the succour of their
. saries to " one who was high and haughty and
brethren, nor allow the faith to be extinguished sat aloft and would not stoop to listen to the
in the lands whence it first shone forth " (Ep. truth from men who stood below since an
;

93). A Western priest, Sanctissimus, who elated mind, if courted, is sure to become
visited the East towards the end of 372 only more contemptuous " {Epp. 215, 239).
whether travelling as a private individual or But while his hope of assistance from the
deputed by Damasus is uncertain again — West lessened, the need for it increased. The
brought assurances of the warm attachment persecution of the orthodox by the Arians
and sincere sympathy of the Italian church ; grew fiercer. " Polytheism had got posses-
but words, however kind, were ineffectual to sion. A greater and a lesser God were wor-
heal their wounds, and Basil and his friends shipped. All ecclesiastical power, all church
again sent a vehement remonstrance, beseech- ordinances, were in Arian hands. Arians
ing their Western brethren to make the baptized Arians visited the sick
; Arians ;

emperor Valentinian acquainted with their administered the sacred mysteries. Only one
wretched condition, and to depute some of offence was severely punished, a strict observ-
their number to console them in their misery, ance of the traditions of the Fathers. For
and sustain the flagging faith of the orthodox that the pious were banished, and driven to
(Epp. 242, 243). These letters, transmitted by deserts. No pity was shewn to the aged.
——
Dorotheus probably a different person from
the former were no more effectual. The
Lamentations filled the city, the country, the
roads, the deserts. The houses of prayer
only point gained was that a council' con- —— were closed the altars forbidden. The
;

however, to the bishops of Illyria' -was


fined, orthodox met for worship in the deserts
summoned in 375 through the instrumentality exposed to wind and rain and snow, or to the
of Ambrose, by which the consubstantiality scorching sun " {Epp. 242, 243). In his dire
of the Three Persons of the Trinity was de- extremity he once more appealed to the West,
clared, and a priest named Elpidius dispatched now in the language of indignant expostulation.
to publish the decrees in Asia and Phrygia. " Why," he asks, " has no writing of consola-
Elpidius was supported by the authority of tion come to us, no visitation of the brethren,
the emperor Valentinian, who at the same no other of such attentions as are due to us
time promulgated a rescript in his own name from the law of love ? This is the thirteenth
and that of his brother Valens, who dared year since the war with the heretics burst
not manifest his dissent, forbidding the upon us. Will you not now at last stretch
persecution of the Catholics, and expressing out a helping hand to the tottering Eastern
his desire that their doctrines should be church, and send some who will raise our
everywhere preached (Theod. iv. 8, 9). But minds to the rewards promised by Christ
the death of Valentinian on Nov. 17, 375, to those who suffer for Him ? " {Ep. 242).
frustrated his good intentions, and the per- These letters were dispatched in 376. But
secution revived with greater vehemence. still no help came. His reproaches were as
The secret of the coldness with which the ineffectual as his entreaties. A letter addressed
requests assistance addressed by the
for to the Western bishops the next year (377)
Eastern church were received by the West proves that matters had not really advanced
was partly the suspicion that was entertained a single step beyond the first day. find We
of Basil's orthodoxy in consequence of his him still entreating his Western brethren in
friendship with Eustathius of Sebaste and the most moving terms to grant him the
other doubtful characters, and the large- consolation of a visit. " The visitation of
heartedness which led him to recognize a the sick is the greatest commandment. But
real oneness of belief under varying technical if the Wise and Good Disposer of human
formulas, but was principally due to his refusal affairs forbids that, let them at least write
to recognize the supremacy of the bp. of Rome. something that may comfort those who are
His letters were usually addressed to the so grievously cast down." He demands of
bishops of the West, and not to the bp. of them " an authoritative condemnation of the
Rome individually. In all his dealings Basil Arians, of his enemy Eustathius, of Apollin-
treats with Damasus as an equal, and asserts aris, and of Paulinus of Antioch. If they
the independence of the East. In his eyes would only condescend to write and inform
the Eastern and Western churches were two the Eastern churches who were to be admitted
sisters with equal prerogatives one more ; to communion and who not, all might yet be
powerful than the other, and able to render well" {Ep. 263). The reply brought back
the assistance she needed, but not in any by the faithful Dorotheus overwhelmed him
way her superior. This want of deference in with sorrow. Not a finger was raised by the
his language and behaviour offended not cold and haughty West to help her afflicted
Damasus only, but all who maintained the sister. Dorotheus had even heard Basil's
supremacy of Rome. Jerome accused Basil beloved friends Meletius and Eusebius of
of pride, and went so far as to assert that Samosata spoken of by Damasus and Peter
there were but three orthodox bishops in the of Alexandria as heretics, and ranked among

East' Athanasius, Epiphanius, and Paulinus the Arians. What wonder if Dorotheus had
{ad Pammach. 38). His appeals proving in- waxed warm and used some intemperate Ian-
— —

BASIL THE GREAT BASIL THE GREAT 125

guage to the prelates ? If he had done so, brows, gave light and animation to his coun-
wrote Basil, let it not be reckoned against tenance. His speech was slow and deliberate.
him, but put down to Basil's account and the His manner manifested a reserve and sedate-
untowardness of the times. The deep de- ness which some of his contemporaries attri-
spondency which had seized Basil is evidenced buted to pride, others to timidity. Gregory
by his touching words to Peter of Alexandria : says, " It was the self-possession of his char-
" I seem for my sins to prosper in nothing, acter, and composure and polish, which they
since the worthiest brethren are found de- called pride," and refers not very convincingly
ficient in gentleness and fitness for their to his habit of embracing lepers as a proof
office from not acting in accordance with my of the absence of superciliousness [Or. xx.
wishes " [Ep. 266). 360). Basil's pride, indeed, was not the empty
Foiled in all his repeated demands, a deaf arrogance of a weak mind ; but a well-
ear turned to his most earnest entreaties, the grounded confidence in his own powers. His
council he had begged for not summoned, the reserve arose partly from natural shyness
deputation he had repeatedly solicited unsent, he jestingly charges himself with " the want
"
Basil's span of life drew to its end amid blasted of spirit and sluggishness of the Cappadocians
hopes and apparently fruitless labours for the {Ep. 48) — partly from an unwillingness to
commit himself with those of whom he was
unity of the faith. It was not permitted him
to live to see the Eastern churches, for the not sure. It is curious to see the dauntless
purity of whose faith he had devoted all his opponent of Modestus and Valens charged
powers, restored to peace and unanimity. with timidity. The heretic Eunomius after
" He had to fare on as he best might— admir- his death accused him of being " a coward
ing, courting, but coldly treated by the Latin and a craven skulking from all severer la-
world, desiring the friendship of Rome, yet bours," and spoke contemptuously of his

wounded by her superciliousness suspected " solitary cottage and close-shut doors, and
of heresy by Damasus, and accused by Jerome his flustered look and manner when persons
of pride " (Newman, Church of the Fathers, entered unexpectedly " (Greg. Nys. adv.
P- 115). Eunom. i. p. 318). Philostorgius also speaks
Some gleams of brightness were granted to of Basil as " from timidity of mind with-
cheer the last days of this dauntless champion drawing from public discussions " {H. E. iv.
of the faith. The invasion of the Goths in 378 12). The fact seems to be that Basil was like
gave Valens weightier cares than the support many who, while shewing intrepid courage
of a tottering heresy, and brought his perse- when once forced into action, are naturally
cution of the orthodox to an end on the eve of averse from publicity. He was a great lover
his last campaign, in which he perished after of natural beauty, as shewn by his letters.
the fatal rout of Hadrianople (Aug. 9, 378). The playful turn of his mind is also seen in
One of the first acts of the youthful Gratian many passages of his familiar letters, which
was to recall the banished orthodox prelates, sufficiently vindicate him from the charge of
and Basil had the joy of witnessing the event austerity of character. In manner he united
so earnestly desired in perhaps his latest ex- Oriental gravity with the finished politeness
tant letter, the restoration of his beloved of the Greeks, and sedateness with sweetness ;

friend Eusebius of Samosata {Ep. 268). Basil his slightest smile was commendation, and
died in Caesarea, an old man before his time, silence was his only rebuke (Greg. Naz. Or.
Jan. I, 378, in the 50th year of his age. He XX. 260, 261).
rallied before his death, and was enabled to The voice of antiquity is unanimous in its
ordain with his dying hind some of the most praise of Basil's literary works (Cave, Hist.
faithful of his disciples. " His death-bed was Lit. i. 239). Nor has the estimate of modem
surrounded by crowds of the citizens, ready," critics been less favourable. " The style of
writes his friend Gregory, " to give part of Basil," writes Dean Milman, " did no dis-
their own life to lengthen that of their bishop." credit to his Athenian education. In purity
He breathed his last with the words " Into and perspicuity he surpasses most of the
Thy hands I commend my spirit." His funeral heathen as well as Christian writers of his
was attended by enormous crowds, who age" {Hist, of Christianity, iii. no).
thronged to touch the bier or the hem of his The works of Basil which remain may be
funeral garments, or even to catch a distant classed as I. Expository, II. Dogmatic, III.
:

glimpse of his face. The press was so great Moral, IV. Epistolary, V. Liturgical.
that several persons were crushed to death, I. Expository.' —
Cassiodorus records that
almost the object of envy because they died Basil wrote commentaries on almost all the
with Basil. Even Jews and pagans joined in books of Holy Scripture. The greater part of
the general lamentations, and it was with these are lost. Those that remain are
some difficulty that the bearers preserved their 1. Hexaemeron. —
Nine Homilies on the Six
sacred burden from being torn to pieces by Days' Work of Creation. This is the most
those who were eager to secure a relic of the celebrated of all his works.
departed saint. He was buried in his father's 2. Seventeen Homilies on the Psalms. —
These
sepulchre, " the chief priest being laid to the were preached ad populum. The first, on the
priests; the mighty voice to the preachers ;
Psalms generally, was translated by Rufinus,
the martyr to the martyrs" (Greg. Naz. Or. and is found prefixed to St. Augustine's Com-
XX- 371, 372). In person he was tall and mentaries. The only other homilies that have
thin, holding himself very erect. His com- reached us are those on Ps. 7, 14 (two), 28
plexion was dark, his face pale and emaciated (two), 29, 32, 33, 37, 44, 45, 48, 59, 61, and
with close study and austerities his forehead 114 (two).
;

projecting, with retiring temples. A quick 3. Commentaries on the first Sixteen Chapters
eye, flashing from under finely arched eye- of Isaiah, a continuous work.
126 BASIL THE GREAT BASILIUS
II. Dogmatic. In Pitra's Analecta (Paris, 1888)
vol. 29-32.
1. Five books —
against Eunomius.' Com- some Fragmenta Ascetica and Epitimia, and in
mended by Jerome {egregii libri), Gregory Psalmos were ascribed to Basil. An English
Nazianzen, and Photius {(^alperoL \6yoi). translation of some selected works and letters
2. On the Holy Spirit, addressed to Amphi- and useful Prolegomena are given in Post-
lochius and written at his request. Nicene Fathers (Wace and Schaff) by W.
3. On Baptism, two books. Blomfield Jackson, 1895. A revised text
4. Homilies. of the treatise On the Holy Spirit with
III. Moral and Ascetic. notes and intro. is pub. by the Clarendon
1. Homilies, against envy, drunkenness, Press. A cheap popular Life by R. T. Smith
anger, on fasting, etc. A very sensible ad- is pub. by S.P.C. K. in their Fathers for Eng.
monition to a young man how to read the Readers. [e.v.]
books of heathen writers with profit {Homil. Basilius, the intimate friend of Chrvsostom,
24), included among these homilies, has been with whom he resolved on the adoption of an
frequently translated and separately pub- ascetic life, and whose consecration to the
lished, among others by abp. Potter, 1694. episcopate he secured by a strange deception.
Several homilies are in honour of local martyrs, His see is unknown, but was probably near
St. Julitta, St. Barlaam, St. Mammas, etc. Antioch. [e-v.]
2. On true Virginity, a treatise addressed Basilius of Cilicia, presbyter of Antioch and
to Letoius, bp. of Melitene, rejected by Gamier bp. of Irenopolis in Cilicia, c. 500 the author
;

on internal evidence, but generally accepted. of an Ecclesiastical History in three books,


3. Ascetic
fatory Discourse
Writings,* including (a)
(b) Discourse on the Renun-

Pre- from A.D. 450 to the close of Justin's reign.
Photius speaks disparagingly of it {Cod. 42).
;

ciation of Worldly Goods (c) On the Ascetical


;
He also wrote a violent book against Joannes
Life ;
(d) On Faith (e) On the Judgment of Scythopolitanus, and Photius {Cod. 107) says
;

God, a prologue to the Ethics (f) Ethics its object was to oppose the doctrine of the
;

or Morals, under 80 heads, compiled from union of the two natures in Christ. [e.v.]
N.T. (g) On the Monastic Institutions, includ-
; Basilius, bp. of Seleucia, in Isauria, and
ing X670S daKrjTiKOs, and VTroTuirwa-is da/cijcrews metropolitan, succeeded Dexianus, who at-
;

(h) The Greater Monastic Rules, opoi /caret tended the council at Ephesus, and therefore
wXaros, 55 in number (in the form of Basil's after 431. He is erroneously identified by
answers to questions of his monks), with Photius with the early friend of Chrysostom,
a proem (i) The Lesser Rules, 6poi Kara who must have been considerably his senior
;

iiTLTOfiriv, 313 in number, in the same form


(Tillemont, xv. p. 340). He is very unfavour-
ably known from the vacillation he displayed
of question and answer (k) Animadversions
;
with regard to the condemnation of Eutyches.
on Delinquent Monks and Nuns, a very early He took
a leading part in the council at
example of a Poenitentiale (1) Monastic Con- Constantinople in
448, at which Eutyches
;

stitutions, acFKrjTLKai diard^ns, in 34 chapters.


was condemned and the next year, when

IV. Epistolary.' In addition to those just the fidelity of the acts of the
;

council was
mentioned we have a collection of no fewer called in question, was one of the commission
than 365 letters addressed by Basil to his appointed to verify them (Labbe, Condi.
private and official correspondents, including vol. iv. But at the " Robbers'
182, 230).
two attributed to the emperor Julian and Synod " held at Ephesus a few months later
twelve to Libanius (cf. F. Loofs, Eustathius his courage gave way, and he acquiesced in
von Sebaste und die Chronologic der Basilian- the rehabilitation of Eutyches, and retracted
ischen Briefe, Halle, 1897). Excerpts from his obnoxious language. Before long he re-
some Letters of Basil from papyrus MSS. were turned to orthodoxy, and in
450 affixed his
published by H. Landwehr Greek MS. from signature to the famous Tome of pope Leo,
:

Fayoum, 1884. on the Incarnation. At the council of



V. Liturgical. There is no reason to call Chalcedon,
451, the imperial commissioners
in question the universal tradition of the East, proposed his deposition,
together with that of
that Basil was the composer of a liturgy. other prelates who had aided in restoring
Those offices, however, which have come down Eutyches. But Basil submitted, concurred
to us under his name have been so largely in the condemnation of Eutyches, and his
interpolated at many different periods, that it offence was condoned {ib. 553, 604, 787).
is impossible to ascertain the correct text of
His extant works comprise 39 homilies (17
the liturgy as drawn up by him. There are on O.T. and 22 on N.T.), the titles and subjects
three chief editions of the Liturgy bearing being given by Fabricius, Bibl. Graec. lib. v.
Basil's name: (i) the Greek or Coustantino-
c. 19, ID. Four on John xi., published as his,
politan, (2) the Syriac, translated into Latin
prove to be the work of St. Chrysostom. A
by Masius, (3) the Alexandrian, found in Homily on the Transfiguration was added to
Coptic, Greek, and Arabic, which versions
the series in the ed. of the Jesuit Daus-
concur in establishing one text. Of these, queius, in 1604. A prose work on The Life
the Constantinopolitan furnishes the surest
and Miracles of St. Thecla has been attributed
materials for ascertaining the genuine form.
to him but not only does the style differ,
The standard edition is the Benedictine, ;

and savour of a later age, but we learn from


pub. at Paris, 1721-1730, by Julian Garnier, Photius that Basilius wrote St. Thecla's life
in 3 vols, fol., reprinted by Migne, Patr. Gk.
in verse. Another supposititious work is the
* Sozomen informs us that in his day the ascetic
Demonstratio contra Judaeos, which appears in
writings commonly attributed to Basil were ascribed the Heidelberg ed. of 1596. Basil's homilies
by some to his, at one time, friend and companion shew much oratorical power and skill in the
Eustathius of Sebaste. use of figurative language. He does not lose

BEDA BEDA 127

sight of perspicuity, but overburdens his style Malmesbury only, and the word presbyterum
with metaphors. He not unfrequently re- on an interlineation in the Cotton MS. as well.
minds us of Chrysostom, though greatly his If presbyterum be authentic, it is a strong
inferior in power. His homilies were first argument against the identification of Bede,
pub. in Gk. by Commelin, I,ugd. Bat. 1396, for he was not ordained priest until 702, and
8vo ; and in Latin by Claud. Dausqueius, Sergius died in 701 ;but it is not essential to
1604, 8vo. They are in the Bibl. Patr. the sense, rests apparently on an interpolation,
Colon. V. and Lugd. Bat. viii. 1677. They and if genuine may be a mistake of the pope.
were also printed at the end of the works of Intercourse between Wearmouth and Rome
Gregory Thaumaturgus, Paris, 1672, fol. was nearly continuous at this time, and there
(Phot. Cod. 168 Tillemont, Mem. eccl. sv. 340,
; is no more likely monk under Ceolfrith's rule
seq. etpassim; Cave Hist. Litt. 441). [k.v.] than Bede. Some monks of the monastery
Beda, more correctly Baeda, The Vener- went to Rome in 701 (Bede, de Tetnporufn
able. —
[Note. Though not properly coming Ratione, c. 47), and brought a privilege from
within the period of this condensed ed., Dr. Sergius on their retiu-n (Hist. Abbat. c. 12),
Stubbs's valuable art. is retained as Bede but Bede was not among them. The invita-
is the classical historian of the English tion was probably meant for Bede, and per-
Church for so much of our proper period. haps the acceptance of it was prevented by
Ed.] Bede was born on the estate given by the death of Sergius. Whether Bede's studies
Ecgfrith, king of Northumbria, to Benedict were mainly at Wearmouth or at J arrow is
Biscop for the foundation of his sister monas- not important as he died and was buried at
;

teries of Wearmouth and J arrow, probably, J arrow, he probably lived there chiefly, but
however, before the lands were so bestowed ;
the two houses were in strict union, and he
for the Wearmouth estate was given in 674, was equally at home in both. Under the
and the J arrow one in 682, whilst the birth of liberal and enlightened ministration of Bene-
Bede seems satisfactorily fixed to 673. The dict Biscop and Ceolfrith, he enjoyed advan-
place of his birth is uncertain, for whilst tra- tages perhaps not elsewhere available in
dition and local history fix it at J arrow, there Europe, and perfect access to all existing
is no positive evidence. Nor are the names soiu'ces of learning in the West. Nowhere
of his parents preserved. He himself, writing, else could he acquire at once the Irish, Roman,
as may be reasonably concluded, immedi- Galilean, and Canterbury learning; that of the
|

ately on the completion of his History in 731, accumulated stores of books which Benedict
j

describes himself then as in his 59th year ;


had bought at Rome and at Vienna or the
;

this would fix his birth in 673; but as he lived disciplinary instruction drawn from the
until735, and the passage may have beenadded monasteries of the continent as well as from
at any time between 731 and 735, his birth has the Irish missionaries. Amongst his friends
been sometimes put as late as 677. Mabillon, and instructors were Trumbert, the disciple of
however, whose arguments are sound and St. Chad, and Sidfrid, the fellow-pupil of St.
whose conclusion has been generally received, Cuthbert under Boisil and Eata from these ;

accepts 673. At the age of 7 Bede was handed he drew the Irish knowledge of Scripture and
over by his relations to the care of Benedict discipline. Acca, bp. of Hexham and pupil of
Biscop, who had not, in 680, begun the build- St. Wilfrid, furnished him with the special lore
ings at J arrow, but had just returned from of the Roman school, martyrological and
Rome bringing the arch-chanter John. Bede other his monastic learning, strictly Bene-
;

was educated in one or both of the sister monas- dictine, came through Benedict Biscop from
teries, and after Benedict's death he passed Lerins and many other continental monas-
under the rule of Ceolfrith. At the age of 19 teries and from Canterbury, with which he
;

he was ordained deacon by John of Beverley, was in friendly correspondence, he probably


then bp. of Hexham, and in his 30th year obtained instruction in Greek, in the study of
received the priesthood from the same prelate ;
the Scriptures, and other refined learning.
as John ceased to be bp. of Hexham in 705, His own monastery offered rest and welcome
and the later date for Bede's birth would place to learned strangers like abbot Adamnan
his ordination as priest in 706 at the earliest, (Bede, H. E. v. 21), and Bede lost no oppor-
this conclusively favours the earlier date ; in tunity of increasing his stores.
which case he was ordained deacon in 691 and He describes the nature of his studies, the
priest in 702. From his admission to the joint meditation on Scripture, the observance of
monastery to his death he remained there regular discipline, the care of the daily singing
employed in study and devotional exercises, in chiurch, " semper aut discere, aut docere,
and there is no evidence that he ever wan- aut scribere dulce habui." These were the
dered further than to York, which he visited occupations of his youth. After his ordina-
shortly before his death. In the valuable tion he devoted himself to selecting from the
MS. Cotton, Tiberius A. xv. fo. 50, which is Fathers passages suitable for illustration and
not later than the loth cent., is preserved a edification, and, as he says modestly, added
letter of pope Sergius to Ceolfrith, desiring contributions of his own after the pattern of
him to send to Rome "religiosum famulum their comments.
Dei N. venerabilis monasterii tui," to assist The list of his works given at the conclusion
in the examination of some points of eccle- of his History, Bede seems to have arranged
siastical discipline. This letter was very early in order of relative importance, not of their
believed to refer to Bede ; and by the time of composition and most of them afford only
;

William of Malmesbury had begun to be read, very slight indications of the dates of writing.
"religiosum Dei famulum Bedam, venerabilis Probably the earliest of his writings are the
monasterii tui presbyterum " the name of more elementary ones, on Orthography, the
;

Bede resting on the authority of William of Ars Metrica and the de Natura Rerum. The
128 BEDA BEDA
Ars Metrica is dedicated to Cuthbert, a " con- Benedict Biscop, not of that of Wilfrid. The
levita," which seems to fix the date of writing soundness and farsightedness of his ecclesias-
before 702 {0pp. ed. Giles, vi. 78). The de tical views would be remarkable in any age,
Temporibus, the latest date of which is 702, and especially in a monk. His letter to
may have followed almost immediately, and Egbert contains lessons of wisdom, clear
the de Natura Rerum has been referred to the perception of abuses, and distinct recommen-
same date. The de Sex aetatibus Saeculi was dation of remedies, which in the neglect of
written 5 years later to be read to Wilfrid. observance of them might serve as a key for
The whole of the commentaries are later ;
the whole later history of the Anglo-Saxon
they are all dedicated to bp. Acca, who suc- church. It breathes also the purest patriot-
ceeded his master Wilfrid in 709. The Com- ism and most sincere love of souls. There is
mentaries on the Apocalypse, the Catholic scarcely any father whose personal history is
Epp., and Acts, came first. Then that on so little known, and whose personal character
St. Luke ; that on Samuel followed, 3 books comes out in his writings so clearly as doq^
of it being written before the death of Ceol- that of Bede in this letter, and in his wonderful
frith in 716 ; that on St. Mark many years History.
after. De Temporum Ratione is assignable on Loved and honoured by all alike, he lived
internal evidence to 726. Before the History in a period which, at least for Northumbria,
come the Life of Cuthbert and of the was of very varied character. The wise Ald-
abbots of Wearmouth and J arrow which are frid reigned during his youth and early man-
referred to in the greater work. The History hood, but many years of disquiet followed his
was completed in 731, after which only the death, and even the accession of his friend
Ep. ad Egbertum seems to have been written. Ceolwulf in 731 did not assure him of the end
The work on which he was employed at the of the evils, the growth of which, since king
time of his death was the translation of St. Aldfrid's death, he had watched with mis-
John's Gospel. givings. His bishops, first John of Beverley,
Bede's attainments were very great. He and after the few years of Wilfrid's final
certainly knew Greek (H. E. v. 24) and some restoration, Acca his friend and correspondent,
Hebrew. He knew Vergil, Ovid, Lucan, and his abbots, first Ceolfrith and then Huaet-
Lucretius, Terence, and a host of smaller bert, were men to whom he could look up and
poets. Homer he quotes once, perhaps at who valued him. His fame, if we may judge
second-hand. He knew nearly all the second- from the demand for his works immediately
rate poets, using them to illustrate the Ars after his death, extended wherever English
Metrica. The earlier Fathers were, of course, missionaries or negotiators found their way,
in familiar use. The diversity and extent of and must have been widespread during his life.
his reading is remarkable grammar, rhetoric, Nearly every kingdom of England furnished
:

poetry, hagiography, arithmetic, chronology, him with materials for his history a London
;

the holy places, the Paschal controversy, priest searched the records at Rome for him ;

epigrams, hymns, sermons, pastoral admoni- abbot Albanus transmitted him details of the
tion and the conduct of penitents ; even history of the Kentish church bp. Daniel, the
;

speculations on natural science, on which he patron of Boniface, supplied the West Saxon ;
specially quotes Pliny, employed his pen, the monks of Lastingham, the depositories
besides his great works on history and the of the traditions of Cedd and Chad, reported
interpretation of Scripture. On all these how Mercia was converted Esi wrote from
;

points his knowledge was thoroughly up to East Anglia, and Cynibert from Lindsey.
the learning of the day ; his judgment inde- Soon after visiting Egbert at York in 734
pendent and his conclusions sound. He must his health began to fail ; and by Easter, 735,
have had good teachers, a good library, and he had become asthmatic. But he laboured to
an insatiable desire for learning. These the last, and, like Benedict Biscop, spent the
qualifications fitted him for the remarkable time of unavoidable prostration in listening
place he holds in literature. to the reading and singing of his companions.
By promoting the foundation of the school When he could, he continued the work of trans-
of York, he kindled the flame of learning in lation, and had reached the 9th verse of John vi.
the West at the moment that it seemed to be on the day he died. As the end approached, he
expiring both in Ireland and in France. This distributed the few little treasures he had been
school transmitted to Alcuin the learning of allowed to keep in his chest, a little pepper,
Bede, and opened the way for culture on the incense, and a few articles of linen ;then,
continent, when England was relapsing into having completed the sentence he was dic-
barbarism under the terror of the Danes. It tating, he desired to be propped up with his
is impossible to read the more popular writings 1 face towards his church. He died repeating
of Bede, especially the Ecclesiastical History, 1
the Gloria Patri. The day is fixed by the
without seeing that his great knowledge was letter of Cuthbert, who details the events of
coupled with the humility and simplicity of the his deathbed to his friend Cuthwin, May 26,
purest type of monasticism. Emploj'ed on a 735. He was buried at J arrow where he
theme which, in the prevailing belief of mira- died his relics were in the nth cent, removed
;

culous stories, could scarcely be treated of to Durham, and in 1104 were found in the
without incurring the charge of superstition, '

same coffin with those of St. Cuthbert. The


he is eminently truthful. The wonders he , story of his epitaph and the tradition of the
relates on his own account are easily referred [
bestowal of the title of Venerable is too well
to natural causes ; and scarcely ever is a J
known and too apocryphal to be repeated here.
reputed miracle recounted without an author- For the subsequent fate of his remains see
ity. His gentleness is hardly less marked. Cuthbert. Alcuin has preserved one of his
He is a monk and politician of the school of ! sayings : "I know that the angels visit the
BEDA BENEDICTUS OF NURSIA 129

canonical hours and gatherings of the brethren; to modern authorities. The student should 1

what if they find not me there among the consult the index in vol. ii. 418 for the fre-
brethren ? Will they not say, Where is Bede quent allusions scattered throughout the two :

why does he not come with the brethren to the vols, to the various writings of Bede. For the
prescribed prayers ? " (Ale. Ep. i6, ed. Migne). text of works other than historical reference
Of the legendary or fictitious statements must still be made to Migne's Patr. Lat. (vols.
about Bede, the following are the most 94-95). or to Dr. J. A. Giles's Patres Ecclesiae
important his personal acquaintance with Anglicanae (vols. 1-12).
: A critical edition of,
Alcuin, which is impossible his education at all events, the Biblical words of Bede is still
;

and sojourn at Cambridge, on which see Giles, a desideratum. Dr. Giles edited some of the
PP. Eccl. Angl. i. Ixx. seq. his visits to Italy smaller treatises 50 years ago, and Mr. Edward
;

and burial at Genoa or at Rome, which seem Marshall published Bede's Explanation of the
to belong to another person of the same name, Apocalypse in 1878 but with these exceptions ;

(ib. i. cvi.). and the legendary statements about few, if any, of his writings have in recent years
his title of Venerable (ib. i. ci.)- For a detailed appeared separately. In the i6th and 17th
investigation of these, and the alleged author- cents, homilies and other works were frequently
ities for them, see Gehle's learned monograph, printed. Reference may be made on this point
Disp. Hist. Theol. de Bed. Ven. (Leyden, 1838), to the art. Bede inthe4-vol. ed. of this Dict.
pp. 2-4, 17-21, and for the fallacies as to the Translations of the historical books were made
date of Bede's death, ib. pp. 31 seq. by Dr. Giles in 1840, Mr. Gidley in 1870, and
Bede's own list of his works may be re- by Miss A. M. Sellar in 1907. The last named
arranged as follows is the most useful for the student. It is a
(i) Commentaries on
:

O.T. -viz. Gen. 4 revision of Dr. Giles, and his work is in turn —
books, derived chiefly from Basil, Ambrose, based upon Mr. Stevens (1723). The notes in
and Augustine the Tabernacle, 3 books
;
Mayor and Lumby's ed. of H. E. iii. and iv. ;

Sam. 3 books the Building of the Temple, (Camb. Univ. Press) are learned and important.
;

2 books on Kings, 30 questions dedicated to Reference should also be made to Lives of Bede
;

Nothelm Prov. 3 books Canticles, 7 books


; by Bp.Browne(i879)andCanonH.D.Rawnsley
; ;

on Isa., Dan., the 12 minor prophets, and part (1904), and to the general treatment of Bede and
of Jer., extracts from Jerome on Ezra and his times in Dr. Bright's Chapters from Early
;

Neh. 3 books on the Song of Habakkuk, i English Church Hist. (pp. 335-338), and Dr. W.
;

book on Tobit, i chapters of lessons on the Hunt's History of the English Church (vol. i.
; ;

Pentateuch, Josh., and Judges Kings, Job, pp. 205-208). A monograph on "Place Names ;

Prov. Eccles. Canticles, Isa., Ezra, and Neh. in the English Bede and the Localization of
(2) Commentaries on N.T. St. Mark, 4 the MSS.," by Thomas Miller, was contri- :

books St. Luke, 6 books 2 books of homilies buted to Quellen und Forschungen zur Sprach-
; ;

on the Gospels Acts, 2 books ; a book on und Culturgeschichte der germanischen Volker ;

each Catholic Ep. 3 books on the Apocalypse, (Strassburg, 1896). The important question
;

Lessons on the whole N.T. except the Gospels. of the chronological order of Bede's works is j

(3) Letters: de Sex Aetatibus ; de Mansion- discussed by Mr. Plummer, op. cit. (i. cxlv.-
ibii-s filiorum Israel ; de eo quod ait Esaias " et clix.). [H.G.]
claudentur, etc." ; de Ratione Bissexti ; de Benedictus of Nursia. St. Benedict, abbot
Aequinoctio. of Monte Cassino (" Abbas Casinensis "),
(4) Hagiographies on St. Felix, rendered called " patriarch of the monks of the West,"
:

from the poem of Paulinus on Anastasius, a lived during the troubled and tumultuous ;

revised trans, from the Greek on St. Cuth- period after the deposition of Augustulus, ;

bert, in verse and prose the abbots of Wear- when most of the countries of Europe were
;

mouth and J arrow; the History of the either overrun by Arians or still heathen.
English Church the Martyrology. ;
There were many monks in southern Europe,
(5) Hymns and epigrams. but without much organization till Benedict
(6) Scientific books de Natura Rerum, de reformed and remodelled the monastic life
:

Temporibus, de Temporum Ratione. of Europe (Mab. Ann. I. i.). The principal,


(7) Elementary books on Orthography, Ars almost sole, authority for the life of St. Bene-
:

Metrica, Schemato, and Trope. dict are the Dialogues of Gregory the Great.
Besides these he wrote translations into The genuineness of these has been questioned,
English, none of which are extant, from the but without sufficient cause.
Scriptures Retractationes on the Acts
; the Benedict was born about a.d. 480 at Nursia ;

Letter to Egbert and a book on penance is (Norcia), anciently belonging to the Sabines
;

ascribed to him. (" frigida Nursia," Virg.), an episcopal city in


Bede's collected works, including many not the duchy of Spoleto in Umbria. His parents
his, were pub. at Paris, 1544 Basle, 1563 were of the higher class (" liberiori genere,"
; ;

Cologne, 1612, 1688 and by Dr. Giles (Lond. Praef. Dial.). A later writer gives their
;

and Oxf.) in 1843 and in Migne's Patr. xc- names, Euproprius and Abundantia (Petr.
;

xcv. [s.] Diac. de Vir. III. i.). The ruins of the an-
All study of Bede must henceforth begin cestral palace are shewn at Norcia, with a
with Mr. C. Plummer's monumental edition crypt, the reputed birthplace of Benedict
of the historical writings Baedae Opera His- (Mab. Ann. i. 4). He was sent as a boy to
torica (Clarendon Press, 1896). It contains be educated at Rome but soon, shocked by ;

the Historia Ecclesiastica Gentis Anglorum, the the immorality of his companions, fled,
Historia Abbatum, the Ep. ad Egbertum, and followed by his nurse (Cvrilla Petr. D. de ;

the anonymous Historia Abbatum. An excel- Vir. III. i.), to Ahle (Effide), on the Anio
lent introduction presents a critical survey of (Teverone), about forty miles from Rome
Bede's works with large references in footnotes [Dial. ii. i). Thence he retired to a cave at
9
130 BENEDICTUS OF NURSIA BENEDICTUS OP NURSIA
Sublaqueum (Subiaco), where he lived as a missionary spirit of Benedict and his monks
hermit in almost utter isolation for some years, overthrew the image and altar of Apollo, and
visited only from time to time by a priest of reared shrines of St. John Evang. and St.
the neighbourhood, Romanus (Dial. ii. i). Martin, the founder of monasticism in France,
The cave, the well-known " il Sagro Speco," within the very walls of the Sun-god's temple
is shewn about three miles of very steep ascent — it was customary to reconsecrate, not to
above the town of Subiaco, and the tradition- destroy, pagan edifices (Greg. M. Ep. xi. 76)
ary spot marked by a monastery, once famous —where now stands one of the most sump-
for its library and for the first printing press tuous of Italian churches. Here Benedict
in Italy, where the youthful anchoret rolled commenced the monastery destined to a
naked in the thorn-bushes to overcome sensual world-wide reputation. Here for 12 years or
temptations (Mab. Ann. i. 8). The fame of more he presided over his followers here he ;

his sanctity spreading abroad, Benedict was is believed to have composed the Benedictine
invited, his youth notwithstanding, by the Rule, in the same year, it is said, in which the
monks of a neighbouring monastery (at Vico- schools of Athens were suppressed, and his
varro) to preside over them, and very reluc- famous Code was promulgated by Justinian;
tantly consented. Soon, however, their laxity and from this sequestered spot he sent forth
rebelled against his attempts at reformation his emissaries not only to Anxur (Terracina,
(he seems thus early to have shewn the or- Dial. ii. 22), but beyond the borders of Italy
ganizing faculty for which he became after- to Sicily (Mab. Ann. iii. 25). Mabillon con-
wards so remarkable), and he abdicated, after siders the narrative in Greek by Gordianus
miraculously escaping being poisoned by them of the Mission of Placidus into Sicily spurious,
(Dial. ii. 3). He retired to his cave and ; but the mission itself beyond doubt. Not
undertook the superintendence of youths, many years elapsed before this and other
among whom were two who became foremost similar foundations were richly endowed with
among his followers, Maurus and Placidus, lands and other offerings (Greg. M. Ep. iii. 3).
sons of Roman patricians (Dial. ii. 4). Here It was in the vicinity of Monte Cassino that
he founded, it is said, twelve monasteries, Benedict confronted and rebuked the ferocious
each of twelve monks with a " father " at the Totila (a.d. 542) at the head of his victorious
head of them (Dial. ii. 3). Of these only Ostrogoths (Dial. ii. 14, 15), and that he was
two remain, " II Sagro Speco " and " Sta. wont to cheer his solitude by brief and rare
Scholastica " ; the rest being in ruins, or interviews with his beloved sister, Scholastica,
merely oratories (Mab. Ann. ii. i). That of herself a recluse at no great distance (ib. 33).
" Sta. Scholastica," so named after Benedict's He is said to have been summoned to a synod
sister, enjoys special privileges, and takes at Rome (a.d. 531) by Boniface II. (Cave,
precedence among the Benedictine foundations Hist. Litt. on the authority of a codex in
even of Monte Cassino, as of older date (Alb. Bibl. Fa/, by Ant. Scrip. Mon. Cas., Eleg. Abb.
Butler, Lives of the Saints). Several of the Cas. p. 25). His death is variously computed
miracles ascribed to Benedict are connected from 539 (Schol. Bened. in Honor. August,
with Subiaco. But, after some time, finding ii'.30 ap. Fabr. Bibl. Eccl.) to a.d. 543
his work continually hindered by the machi- (Trithem, de Vir. III. c. 300, ap. Fabr. ; cf.
nations of a dissolute priest, Florentius, he re- Clint. Fast. Rom. and Mab. AA. SS. O.S.B.
moved, probably c. 530 (Mab. Ann. Hi. ;), with Praef.). Some few writers assign a yet later
some of his disciples to Monte Cassino (Dial. ii. date. His sister (his twin-sister according to
8), destined to become illustrious as the head- Trithemius, but cf. Mab. Ann. iii. 14) shortly
quarters of the great Benedictine order, and as predeceased him. She is called abbess by
a stronghold of learning and liberal arts even Bertharius, Abb. Cas. in the 8th cent, (ib.) ;

in the darkest ages. The mountain, with a town but probably lived alone (cf. Greg. M. Dial. iii.
and stream at its base, all of the same name, 7, 14), or as one of a sisterhood. The words
stands on the borders of what were formerly " ad cellam pr opriam recessisset are ambiguous
'
'

Latium and Campania, nearer to Naples than (Dial. ii. 34; cf. Act. Sanct. Feb. 10).
Rome, a few miles from the birthplace of the The character of St. Benedict may be best
great Dominican, Thomas Aquinas. Some ruins estimated from his Regula Monastica, if, as
of an old Roman amphitheatre mark the site of indeed is reasonable to suppose, it was his
the town, near the modern St. Germano the
; composition. In contrast to monastic rules
little stream flows into the Rapido, a tributary already in existence, chiefly of Eastern origin,
of the Garigliano (Liris). The summit of the it breathes a spirit of mildness and considera-
mountain three miles above the town, and tion, while by the sanction for the first time
even at the present time inaccessible to given to study it opened the way for those
carriages, was crowned, before the arrival of literary pursuits which afterwards developed
Benedict, by a temple of Apollo ;frequented themselves so largely within convent walls.
even then by the rustics (Dial. i. 8), although The account of the great Reformer's tender
the existence of a bp. of Cassino is indicated affection for his sister, and of his withdrawal
by the list of bishops present at the Roman before opposition at Subiaco, seems to give
council, A.D. 484 (Mab. Ann. iii. 5). On this verisimilitude to the traditionary portraits
precipitous eminence, looking down on the of him, as of gentle though dignified aspect.
plains washed by the peaceful Liris (" taci- His demeanour before Totila, the strict rule
turnus amnis," Hor.), and backed by the wild under which he kept others as well as himself
crags of the Abruzzi Benedict set himself with [Dial. ii. 23, etc.), and his severity in repress-
new vigour to carry out his plans of a revival ing the slightest disobedience (24, 28, etc.)
of monasticism. The miraculous intervention testify to his practical insight into character
of which Gregory hands down the story (Dial. (20), as well as to his zeal and courage. In
ii. 9, 10) is not necessary to explain how the Dial. iii. 161 he is said (like Anthony) to have
BENEDICTUS I. BERYLLUS 131

reproved a hermit who had chained himself to Bertha [Bercta), wife of Ethelbert, king of
a rock, in these words, " Brother, be bound Kent. She was daughter of Caribert, king
only by the chain of Christ !
" The character of Pans, by his wife Ingoberga (Greg. Turon.
of the Benedictine Order, by the specialities iv. 26, ix. 26), and lost her father in 575, her
which have always distinguished it from other mother in 589. The date of her marriage is
religious orders, attest the sagacious and liberal unknown, but it was probably after the death
character of its founder. Fleury thinks he was of her mother, although Bede speaks of the
not ordained, although he preached [Eccl. Hist. king receiving her " a parentibus." Ethel-
xxxii. 15). The idea of his being a priest is bert was still a heathen, and on his marriage
modern (Mab. Ann. O.S.B. v. 122 Murat. Scr. it was made a condition that his wife should
;

Ital. iv. 27). be allowed to enjoy the exercise of her own


Some, probably not all, of the remains of religion, and should be attended by a bishop.
St. Benedict were transferred from his shrine Liudhard, or Letard, who is called by the
at M. Cassino to the Benedictine abbey at Canterbury historians bp. of Senlis (Thorn,
Floriacum (Fleury), on the Loire, in the 7th ed. Twysden, 1767), was chosen to accompany
cent, or at a later date (Mab. Acta, ii. 339). her, and the remains of the church of St.
The question is discussed at length in ^^. SS. Martin, at Canterbury, were allotted for
Boll. 21 Mar. iii. 299-301, and in Mab. AA. Christian worship (Bede, H. E. i. 26). It was
SS. O.S.B. Saec. ii. 337-352. partly, no doubt, by her influence that Ethel-
For his life, see Greg. M. Dial. lib. ii. in bert was induced to receive the Roman mission
Migne's Patr. Ixvi., also in Mabillon's Acta and to be baptized. Pope Gregory, in 601,
Sanctorum O.S.B. Saec. i., in Muratori, Script. when sending Mellitus to reinforce Augustine's
Rer. Italic, iv., and elsewhere. Vita S. Bene- company, addressed a letter to Bertha, in
dicti (in verse), by Marcus Poeta, said to be which he compliments her highly on her faith
a disciple of St. Benedict, in Mab. A A. SS. and knowledge of letters, and urges her to
Saec. i. ;cf. Pauli Diac. Histor. Langobard. i. make still greater efforts for the spread of
26 see also Gregoire le Grand, la vie de St. Christianity. He also ascribes the conversion
;

Benoit, etc., par Jos. Mege, Par. 1734, 4to ;


of the English mainly to her, and compares
Mab. Ann. O.S.B. i. viii-. Acta Sanctorum her to the empress Helena (St. Greg. Epp.
(Bolland.), 21 Mar. iii. Bened. Haefteni, xii. 29 ; Haddan and Stubbs, Councils, iii.
Commentar. in Vit. S. Bened. For a more 17, 18). The date of her death is unknown.
complete catalogue of hymns, sermons, etc., She was buried in the porch of St. Martin, in
on St. Benedict see Potthast s.v. Among the church of SS. Peter and Paul (Bede, H. E.
modern biographies see Le pitture dello Zingaro ii. 5). Ethelbert seems to have married again
net chiostro di S. Severino in Napoli pubblicate after her death. She was the mother of
per la prima volta e dilucidate da Stanislao Eadbald, who succeeded to the throne on
d'Aloe (Napoli, 1846, 4to) also Tosti St. Ethelbert's death, and of Ethelburga, who, in
;

Ben., historical discourse on his life from the 625, was married to Edwin, King of North-
Italian (Lond. 1896), and Essays on Tosti's umbria. As her son was unbaptized in 616,
Life Lond. 1896). In a new ed. of the English it is probable that she found considerable
(

trans, of Montalembert's Monks of the West difficulty in promoting Christianity in her own
(Lond. 6 vols. 1896) is an introduction by family, or else that she died whilst her children
Dom Gasquet on the Rule. A convenient ed. were very young. Elmham(ed. Hardwick, p. no)
of the Rule, by D. H. Blair, with Eng. says she took part in founding the monastery
translation, was pub. at Lond. and Edin. of St. Augustine, at Christmas, 604, but this is
(2nd. ed.), 1896. [i.G.s.] merely traditional and the latest trustworthy
;

Benedictus I., pope, called by the Greeks trace of her is St. Gregory's letter of 601. [s.]
Bonosus (Evagr. Sc. H. E. v. 16), son of Beryllus, bp. of Bostra,* in Arabia, known
Boniface, a Roman, was elected successor to in his day as one of the most learned teachers
John III. on June 3, 574 (Jaffe, Regesta Pont. ;
of the church. He conceived heretical views
the dates given by Baronius are erroneous ;
as to the person of our blessed Lord, to con-
cf. Clinton, F. R. ii. 543, on the causes of sider which a synod assembled at Bostra, a.d.
discrepancy in the pontifical chronology). 244. The bishops unanimously condemned
During his pontificate Italy was harassed by his teaching, and declared that Christ at His
the invasion of the Lombards. Though they Incarnation was endowed with a human soul
never actually penetrated into the city of (Socr. H. E. iii. 7), but were unable to con-
Rome, they ravaged the suburbs, violated the vince Beryllus of his error. Origen. however,
cemeteries, and persecuted the Christians. who, having been recently degraded from Holy
Misery and famine ensued, and Rome was Orders and excommunicated at Alexandria,
only relieved eventually by a corn fleet from was then residing at Caesarea, had been in-
Egypt, dispatched at the pope's request by vited to the synod, and by his intellectual
the emperor Justin. Benedict died in July superiority, dialectical skill, and friendly
578, and was bvuried on the last day of that moderation succeeded in proving to Beryllus
month in St Peter's. He was succeeded by the unsoundness of his tenets, and in leading
Pelagius II. (Anastas. Liber. Pontif. cf. Paul.
; him back to the orthodox faith. For this,
Diac. de Gestis Long. ii. 10, ap. Muratori, i.). according to Jerome, he received the thanks
According to Ciacconius {Vitae Pont. Rom.) of Beryllus in a letter extant in his time. Our
his memory was eulogized by Gregory the only authority as to the tenets of Beryllus is
Great. His restoration of certain lands to a somewhat obscure passage of Eusebius,
the Abbot of San Marco at Spoleto rests on H. E. vi. 33, and a fragment of Origen's com-
the same authority (Greg. Op. ii. 950, ed. mentary on the Epistle to Titus, found in the
Bened.) see generally Baronius, sub annis
; * Socr. H. E. iii. 7, erroneously makes Beryllus
573-577 Labbe, Condi, vol. v.). [t.r.b.]
; bp. of Philadelphia.

132 BLANDINA BOfiTHIUS


apology of Pamphilus, Orig. 0pp. torn. iv. with the Consolatio, into which the mind and
p. 22, ed. Bened., which have led to very heart of its author were manifestly thrown ;

opposite conclusions. These may be seen in nevertheless Hand (Encyclopddie, v. Ersch.


Dorner, where the whole question is discussed u. Gruber, in voce) has endeavoured to shew
at length. His views were Monarchian, and that they are alien in point of philosophy as
are identified by Schleiermacher with those well as in the method of thought and expres-
of the Patripassians, and by Baur with those sion from the undoubted writings of Boethius.
of Artemon and the neo-Ebionites. Accord- For instance, although philosopher and theo-
ing to Dorner, Beryllus occupies a middle logian alike demonstrate the substantial as
place, forming a connecting link between opposed to the accidental nature of God,
the Patripassians and Sabellius. The leading Boethius {ad Arist. Categ. c. 4) maintains
ideas of his teaching as developed by Dorner Aristotle's distinction of substances, whereas
from Eusebius were as follows (i) there : the author of the first theological treatise
existed a iraTpiKTj dedrrj^ in Christ, but not an insists upon the substantial indifference of
/5^a BeSr-ns (2) Christ had no independent
: the three persons in the Trinity. Again,
existence in a circumscribed form of being while Boethius translates the oiiaia of Aristotle
of His own (kot' idiav oucrias TrepLypa(t>rjv), by substantia, the author of the third treatise
before His Incarnation {eTn5r)/j.la). (3) Sub-
adopts the later rendering essentia, while
sequently to His Incarnation, He Who had he also follows ecclesiastical writers in his
been identified with the TrarpiKr] deor-qs became use of the words substantia [invbcTTaffL's) and
a circumscribed Being possessed of an in- persona (irpbcxwiTov). The arguments of Hand
dependent existence ; the being of God in have been controverted by Gustave Baur (de
Christ being a circumscription of the debr-qs Boeth. Christianae Fidei Assertore, c. i), but
of the Father, i.e. of God Himself. According the theory of a second Boethius, whom Hand
to Eusebius, H. E. vi. 20, Beryllus was the supposes to have been confounded at an early
author of epistles and treatises displaying date with the philosopher, so far from being
refuted, has suggested the still more plausible
considerable elegance. Hieron. de Script. Eccl.
No. Ix. Niceph. H. E. v. 22
; Neander ii. conjecture of Obbarius {Proleg. ad Consol.
;
Phil. p. xxxvii. Jenae, 1843) that another
pp. 350 ff. Gieseler, v. p. 219
; Dorner, ;

Person of Christ, First Period, Second Epoch, Severinus was the author of the works in
§ i. c. 2, div. i. vol.
question, and that to this person, and not to
ii. pp. 35-45, Clark's
trans. Schrockh, iv. 38
; Mosheim, de Reb. the author of the Consolatio, belong the
;

Christ, ante Constant, p. 699 UUman, Comment,


honours of martyrdom in defence of the
;

de Beryll. Bost. (Hamb. 1835) Catholic faith. In support of this conjecture


Fock, Diss, de
;

Christolog. Beryll. Bost. (1843). [e.v.]


there are the facts (i.) That no author is
:

Blandina, martyr, a female slave, reckoned known to mention the theological works of
as the chief among the martyrs of Lyons, in Boethius before Alcuin [de Proc. Spir. Sancti,
that, although weakest in body, she suffered p. 752), who flourished nearly three centuries
longest and most bravely the most various after his death. (ii.) That although the
and prolonged torture. Among other things tradition was current in the Middle Ages, from
she was stretched upon a cross and thrown to Paulus Diaconus (8th cent.) downwards, that
wild beasts, which, however, refused to touch Boethius laid down his life in his zeal for the
her ; and finally she was tied up in a net and Catholic faith against the Arian invaders of
Italy, this is not his own account of his fall
gored to death by a bull. (Eus. H. £. v. i
Eucher. Lugdun. Horn, inter Horn. Euseb. from court favour nor is it supported by any
;

Emesen. xi. Greg. Tur. de Glor. Martt. xlix.


contemporary writer, (iii.) That in the
;

Baron. June 2.) epitaph of Gerbertus, bp. of Ravenna, after-


;

[a.vv.h.]
Bobthius (Boerios, Procop.), Anicius Man- wards pope Sylvester II., inscribed upon the
monument raised in his honour by Otho III.,
lius Severinus.* This honourable name, in-
A.D. 996, no mention is made of mart>Tdom
vested by the church for so many centuries
or of canonization (Migne, Patr. vol. 139, p.
with a halo of sanctity, can hardly be ex-
287). (iv.) That while the church of Rome
cluded from a Dictionary of Christian Bio-
graphy, though some criticism in modern
knows nothing of St. Boethius, the festival of
St. Severinus has been held on Oct. 23 ever
times has tended to distinguish the Roman
since the 8th cent., in the neighbourhood of
senator, the author of the Consolatio Philoso-
Ticinum, where Boethius is popularly believed
phiae, from the writer of certain theological
to have been executed. The double clue runs
treatises which bear his name, and upon
throughout the history of Boethius, as derived
the genuineness of which depends his claim
from various sources same twofold
to be enrolled among the martyrs of character, half secular, the ;

half ecclesiastical,
Christendom. These works, (i.) de Sancta
Trinitate, (ii.) Utrum Pater et Filius Substan-
pervades the whole and hence the unusual
;

number of so-called fables mingled with the


tialiter Praedicentur, (iii.) de Duabus Naturalis
et una Persona Christi, contra Eutychen et
best authenticated facts e.g: —
(i) The wife of Boethius was unquestion-
Nestorium, (iv.) Fidei Confessio seu brevis
ably Rusticiana, the daughter of the senator
Institutio Religionis Christianae, based upon
the Aristotelian Categories, and compiled in
Symmachus (Cons. Phil. ii. 3, 4 Procop. ;

Goth. iii. 20), by whom he had two sons,


great measure from the writings of St. Augus-
Aurelius Anicius Symmachus and Anicius
tine, being concerned entirely with abstract
Manlius Severinus, who were consuls a.d. 522
questions of dogma, offer but little to compare
(Cows. Phil. ii. 3, 4) but tradition makes
;

• The additional name of Torguatus does not him to have been also the husband of Elpis,
occur before the 15th cent. Btrtius is the only a Sicilian lady and the authoress of two
commentator who gives the pr^enomen Flavius. hymns in the Breviary [ElpisJ, and by her to
BOETHIUS BOETHIUS 133

have had two sons, Patricius and Hypatius, brought up under the care of the chief men
Greek consuls a.d. 500. at Rome {ib. ii. 3), and became versed in
(2) According to his own statement, Boethius the erudition of his own country and like-
was imprisoned {Cons. Phil. i. ii. metr. 24) wise in that of Greece. In the words of
at a distance of 500 miles from Rome {ib. i. his friend Cassiodorus, " The geometry of
4) ; according to other accounts he was simply Euclid, the music of Pythagoras, the arith-
exiled, a confusion which no doubt arose from metic of Nicomachus, the mechanics of
the epitaph of the said Elpis, in which she is Archimedes, the astronomy of Ptolemy, the
said (Burm. Anth. Lat. tom. ii. epigr. 138) to theology of Plato, and the logic of Aristotle,"
have followed her husband into banishment. were translated and illustrated for the benefit
(3) His fall and death is mixed up
by of the Romans by his indefatigable pen {Var.
Paulus Diaconus and other writers, who i. Ep. 45). Nor was he less distinguished for
are followed among modern writers by Bahr his virtue. His purse was ever open to the
(Rom. Lit. p. 162) andHeyne (Censar. Ingenii, poor of Rome (Procop. Goth. I. i.). He
etc.,Boeth.), with the constrained embassy of exerted his authority and eloquence on behalf
pope John to Constantinople on behalf of of the oppressed provincials {Cons. Phil. i. 4).
the Arians of the East, which is said to have Such conspicuous merit was at first appre-
resulted in the suspicion of his treachery and ciated by Theodoric. He received the title
finally in his death whereas Boethius was
;
of patrician while still a youth {ib. i. 3),
put to death, according to others (Anonym. became consul a.d. 510, and princeps senatus
Vales., etc.), before the embassy, or at least (Procop. Goth. I. i.), was employed in the
before the return of the pope, a.d. 525, and important station of master of the offices
as he himself implies (Cons. Phil. i. 4), on (.Anonym. Vales, p. 26), in which post his
suspicion of conspiracy, not against Arianism, scientific knowledge and mechanical skill
but for the restoration of the liberty and power were turned to ample account (Cassiod. Ep. i.
of the senate. 10, 45, ii. 40), and reached the summit of
(4) Two distinct accounts exist of his his fortune on the day when, supported by his
execution, one stating that he was beheaded two sons, who had just been inaugurated in
at Ticinum (Anast. Vit. Pontif. in Johanne I. ;
the consulship, he pronounced a panegyric
Almoin, Hist. Franc, ii. i), where he was upon Theodoric and gratified the populace
imprisoned, according to popular tradition, with a largess {Cons. Phil. ii. 3). But a re-
in a tower still standing at Pavia in 1584 verse was at hand. The philosopher had
(Tiraboschi. iii. 1. i, c. 4) another relating
; exerted himself to rescue the state from the
(Anonym. Vales, p. 36, in Gronov. ed. Amm. usurpation of ignorance ;the senator had
MarceU.) that he was confined along with opposed his integrity to the tyrarmy and
Albinus in the baptistery of a church, and avarice of the barbarians who did not in
soon afterwards executed " in agro Calven- general share the moderation of their leader.
tiano," first being tortured by a cord tightly His expression, " palatini canes " [ib. i. 4),
twisted round his forehead, and then beaten shews his uncompromising spirit against their
to death with a club. iniquities and it is not surprising that
;

(5) He is claimed by the church as a saint the courage and sympathy he shewed in
and martyr under the name of Severinus, pleading the cause of Albinus, a senator who
"
the friend of St. Benedict (Tritenhem, ap. was accusedof " hoping the liberty of Rome
Fabric. Bibl. Lat. iii. 13), and the worker of {ib.), joined to other similar conduct, and
a miracle at his death (Martianus Rota, vid. misrepresented by his foes, at length poisoned
Boeth. in usum Delphin.), but of all this his the mind of Theodoric, who seems to have
contemporaries knew nothing, and no hint of appointed one Decoratus, a man of worthless
it appears until three centuries after his death, character, to share and control the power
when he also becomes the author of four of his favourite {ib. iii. 4). As to the
dogmatic treatises on the mysteries of the existence of any widespread conspiracy to
Trinity. overthrow the Ostrogothic rule there is but
Whether or not this double tradition has very faint evidence, and against this must be
grown out of the history of two distinct set down his own indignant self-justification
individuals, there can be little doubt that to {ib. i. 4). A sentence of confiscation and death
obtain a true estimate of the character and was passed upon him by the senate without
writings of Boethius, the author of the a trial he was imprisoned in the Milanese
;

Consolatio must be distinguished from territory, and ultimately executed in one of


Severinus, saint and martyr, or whoever else the ways named above, probably about the
was the writer of the above-mentioned 50th year of his age, a.d. 520-524. His
theological works. It remains for us briefly father-in-law, Symmachus, was involved in his
to notice the most authentic facts of the ruin (Procop. Goth. I. i.), and his wife, Rus-
philosopher's life, and to inquire how far his ticiana, reduced to beggary {ib. iii. 20). The
thoughts were coloured by the contempor- remorse of Theodoric, which came too late
aneous influence of Christianity, or exercised to save " the last of the Romans," is the
an influence in their turn upon the religious natiural and tragic finish to a story which has
thought of the Middle Ages. too many parallels in history.
Boethius was born between the years a.d. It was during his imprisonment that Boe-
470-475, as is inferred from his contemporary thius composed his Consolation of Philosophy,
Ennodius (Eucharisma de Vita sua), who says a work described by Gibbon as " a golden
that he himself was sixteen when Theodoric volume, not unworthy of the leisure of Plato
invaded Italy, a.d. 490. As a wealthy orphan or Tully." It is a dialogue in prose and verse
{Cons. Phil. ii. 3) Boethius inherited the patri- (a species of composition suggested probably
mony and honours of the Anician family, was by the medleys of Petronius and CapeUaJ
134 BOETHIUS BONIFACIUS I.

between the author and his visitant, Philo- Bono de Hebdomadibus ;


; all of which are
sophy, whom he represents as a woman of dedicated to pope John.
reverend mien and varying stature, upon the The most complete ed. of his works is in
borders of whose vesture were woven the Migne's Pair. Lat., which is a collation of the
letters n and B, symbolizing no doubt the best edd. The best edd. of the Consolatio are
Platonic division of philosophy into irpaKTiKr} those of Theod. Obbarius (Jenae, 1843) and
and deuiprjTiKrj. Those who regard the " Con- R. Peiper (Leipz. 1871), the latter including
solation " as the work of a Christian have not the theological works and prolegomena. The
unnaturally been perplexed by its total silence most interesting trans, is that into Anglo-
as to the distinctive faith of Christianity, and Saxon bv Alfred the Great, edited by W. J.
have been forced to suppose it incomplete Sedgefiel'd (Lond. 1899). See also G. Boissier,
(Bertius, Lips. 1753), or to interpret it allegori- "Le Christianisme de Boece" \n Journal des
cally (Gervais, vid. Schrockh, Hist. Eccles. xvi. savants (Paris, 1899).
118). It breathes a spirit of resignation and
The chief ancient authorities for the life of
hope, but so does the Phaedo. It is based
Boethius are the epistles of his contemporaries
upon a firm belief in Providence, but it is Cassiodorus and Ennodius, and the History of
only in his poetic flights that the author's Procopius. The best modern authorities are
Hand, in Ersch and Gruber's Encyclop. and
language seems to savour of a belief in a ;

personal God (Coyis. Phil. iii. metr. 9), his for an opposite view of his religious faith,
Gvisiave Baur, de Bocth. Christianae Fidei As-
faith never elsewhere rising higher than
Theism, and occasionally passing into Pan- sertore (Darmst. 1841) ; Heyne, Censura Boeth.
theism (ih. iii. 12, et pass.). He asserts the de Cons. Phil. (Getting. 1805), in Opusc.
Academ. vi. 142 the " Prolegomena de
efficiency of prayer, but the injunction thereto ;

is drawn from the Timaeus and not from the


Boethii vita et scriptis " to the ed. of the
Cons. Phil, by Obbarius ; A. Hildebrand,
N.T. (ib. iii. 9), while the object of his
aspirations is not the (xricpavos ftoiys or biKaio- Boethius und seine Stelling zum Christenthum
(Regussburg, 1885); and H. F. Stewart,
(Tvvr)% of the Apostle, but the summum bonum
Boethius, an Essay (Edin. 1891). [e.m.v.]
of the Greek philosopher. He has been Bonifacius I., pope and saint, successor of
thought to betray an acquaintance with the
Zosimus, a Roman, son of a priest, Jocundus,
Christian idea of heaven (ib. i. 5, iii. 12, iv.
has been identified with Boniface the priest,
I, V. i), but his pafria is the peace of the
the papal representative at Constantinople
philosophic mind, not the iroXireufia iv ovpavi^
during the time of Innocent I. (Baronius s.a.
i'firapxoi'. In short, the whole work, with
405, § 15, cf. Bianchi-Ciiovini, Storia dei Papi,
the exception of words and phrases which i. 353). Zosimus died on Dec. 26, 418. On
merely imply an acquaintance with Christian the 28th Boniface was elected bishop in the
writers, might have been written, so far as Church of St. Theodora by a majority of the
theology is concerned, by Cicero himself. The clergy and people, and consecrated next day
works of Boethius prove his intimate know- in the church of St. Marcellus. Previously,
ledge of Greek literature, and were for centuries however, a small body of the clergy, contrary
the only vehicle by which Greek philosophy to the command of the prefect Symmachus,
penetrated to the West but his chief work
;
had shut themselves up in the Lateran, and
is now of value only as serving, along with
as soon as the burial of Zosimus took place,
the poetry of Claudian and Ausonius, to mark proclaimed Eulalius the archdeacon pope.
the point of contact between the thought of Three bishops (including the bp. of Ostia)
heathendom and the faith of Christianity. assisted at the consecration of Eulalius, nine
That from the 6th to the 14th cent, its author at that of Boniface. Symmachus reported to
was invested with a monopoly of philosophic the emperor Honorius in favour of Eulalius.
(greatness was natural in the utter decay of Honorius decided accordingly, and ordered
[earning, but it was the excess of darkness Boniface to quit the city, but ultimately pro-
ivhich made his light of brightness sufficient
nounced in his favour. This was the third
to shine across the ages till it paled in the
disputed election (see full account, with all
rising splendour of the revival of letters.
the documents, in Baronius s.a. 419 Jaffe,
;

His works are de Consolatione Philosnphiae


:
Regesta). Personally, Boniface is described as
libri v. in Porphyrii Isagogen a Victorino appointment,
;
an old man at the time of his
Translatam Dialogi ii. in eandem a se ipso
;
which he was unwilling to accept, of mild
Latine Translatam libri v. in Categorias
;
character, given to good works (Anastasius,
Arisfotelis libri ii. in Ejusdem Librutn wepi
;
Lib. Pont.). In the contest against Pelagius,
epfiTjveias lib. i.
; Editionis secundae libri vi.Boniface was an unswerving supporter of
;

Analyticormn Aristotelis Priormn et Posteri- orthodoxy and Augustine. [Pelagius. Two 1

orum libri iv. Topicorum Aristotelis libri viii.


; letters of the Pelagians had fallen into the
;

in Aristotelis Topica libri viii. (not extant) pope's hands, in both of which Augustine was
;

Introductio in Syllogismns Categoricos ; de calumniated. Boniface sent them promptly


Syllogismis Hyputheticis libri ii. de Divisione ; by the hands of Alypius to Augustine him-
;

de Defmitione ; de Differenliis Topicis libri iv. self, that he might reply to them.
;
His reply,
in Topica Ciceronis libri vi. Elenchornm contained in the " Quatuor libri contra duas
;

Sophisticorum libri ii. de Arithineticd libri Epp. Pelagianorum " (0pp. x. 411, Ben. ed.
; ;

ii.; de Musicd libri v. de Geonietria libri cf. Repr. ii. 61 in vol i.), is addressed to Boni-
;

ii.; also two short treatises entitled respec- face, and bears testimony to the kindness and
tively " de Rhetoricae Cognatione," and " Loc- condescension of his character. Boniface
orum Rhetoricorum Distinctio," discovered by was strenuous in enforcing the discipline of
cardinal Mai in a MS. of the nth cent. the church. Thus he insisted that Maximus,
Doubtful works de Unitate et Uno ;
: de bp. of Valence, should be brought to trial for
;

BONIFACIUS II. BONOSUS 135


his misdemeanours before the bishops of Gaul a few weeks afterwards but Boniface carried
;

(see letter in Labbe, Cone. ii. 1584). So also his enmity beyond the grave, and anathema-
in the case of the vacancy of the see of Lodeve tized his dead rival for simony (cf. Cassiodorus,
he insisted on a rigid adherence to the decrees Var. 9, Ep. 5). This anathema was subse-
of the council of Nicaea, that each metropoli- quently removed by Agapetus I. It has been
tan, and In this case the metropolitan of conjectured (by Baronius, Labbe, Cave, etc.)
Narbonne, should be supreme within his own that the double election was brought about by
province, and that the jurisdiction conferred Athalaric the Gothic king, that he might have
by his predecessor Zosimus on the bp. of Aries an opportunity to intervene after the example
should be of none effect (Labbe, ib. 1585). of Theodoric, and place a partisan of his own
On the significance of this transaction as re- upon the papal throne. [Theodoricus (3) ;

gards the history of the relation of the pope Fflix III. (cf. Gieseler, Eccl. Hist. i. § 115, p.
to the metropolitans, see Gieseler, Ecc. Hist. 340, Eng. trans, and reff.).] The pontificate of
i. § 92 (p. 265, Eng. trans.)- Nor was he less Boniface is chiefly remarkable for the bold
strenuous in his assertion of the rights of the measure proposed and carried by him at a
Roman see. Following the policy of his pre- council at St. Peter's, by which he was em-
decessors, Siricius and Innocent, he vindicated powered to nominate his own successor.
the supremacy of his patriarchate over the Accordingly he nominated the deacon Vigilius
province of Eastern Illyria. The people of (subsequently pope, 537), and obtained the
Corinth had elected a certain Perigenes bishop, consent of the clergy thereto. Shortly after-
and sent to Rome to ask the pope to ratify wards, however, another council met and
the election. Boniface refused to entertain annulled the previous decree as contrary
their request until sent through the hands to the canons. Boniface acknowledged his
and with the consent of the papal legate, error and publicly burned the document with
Rufus, archbp. of Thessalonica. The party his own hands. Some {e.g. Bianchi-Giovini,
in Corinth opposed to Perigenes appealed to Storia dei Papi, ii. 165) have conjectured that
the Eastern emperor. Theodosius decreed Boniface acted throughout as the tool of the
that canonical disputes should be settled unprincipled Vigilius ;others {e.g. Baronius,
by a council of the province with appeal Milman, etc.) that the object of Boniface was
to the bp. of Constantinople. Boniface im- to prevent for the future the interference of
mediately complained to Honorius that this the Gothic king, and that it was the Gothic
law infringed the privileges of his see, and king that compelled him to rescind the decree.
Theodosius, on the request of his uncle, an- It would have been equally difficult, however,
nulled it. Proposals, however, had actually to have brought the clergy and people of Rome
been made for the convocation of a provincial to tolerate such a scheme. Of the pontificate
council to consider the Corinthian election. of Boniface there is little else to record. A
To check this tendency to independence, and petition was presented to him (in which he is
to defeat the rival claims of Constantinople, styled " Universal Bishop ") by Stephen,
Boniface forthwith addressed letters to Rufus, archbp. of Larissa, metropolitan of Thessaly,
to the bishops of Thessaly, and to the bishops complaining of the encroachments of the
of the entire province. Rufus was exhorted patriarch of Constantinople, who had suspend-
to exercise the authority of the Roman see ed Stephen from his office. The result of the
with all his might and the bishops were
; council held is unknown, but there can be
commanded to obey him, though allowed the little doubt that Boniface followed the policy
privilege of addressing complaints concerning of his predecessors in this matter and asserted
him to Rome. " No assembly was to be held the authority of the Roman see over the
without the consent of the papal vicar. Never whole of the province of Illyria (see documents
had it been lawful to reconsider what had once in Labbe, Cone. iv. i6go seq., also Bonifacius
been decided by the Apostolic see" (see I.). He died in Oct. 532, and was buried on
documents in Labbe, iv. 1720 sqq.). Among the 17th in St. Peter's. He was succeeded
the lesser ordinances attributed to him by by John II. (see generally Anastasius, Lib.
Anastasius the most important is that whereby Pont. ; Labbe, Cone. iv. 1682 sqq. Baronius,
;

he forbade slaves to be ordained without the sub annis ;Migne, Patr. Ixv.). [t.r.b.]
consent of their masters. Boniface died on BonoSUS, the founder of the sect of the
Sept. 4, 422, and was buried, according to the Bonosiani, was bp. of Sardica in Illyria at
Martyr. Hieronym. (an. Jaffe, Reg.), in the the end of the 4th cent. (TiUemont, x. 754).
cemetery of St. Maximus, according to Anas- Bonosus is only known to us as holding the
tasius in that of St. Felicitas (cf. Ciacconius, same views with Helvidius with regard to the
Vtt. Pont, who gives several epitaphs). He perpetual virginity of the mother of our Lord,
was succeeded by Celestine I. His letters are and as to His brethren, whom he affirmed to
given by Labbe, vol. iv. Migne, Patr. vol. xx.
; have been the natural offspring of Joseph and
Baronius. (Cf. Jaffe, Rcgesta and App. pp. Mary. At the synod of Capua, convened by
932, 933. where spurious letters and decrees Valentinian, a.d. 391, to settle the rival claims
attributed^ to Boniface are given), [t.r.b.1 of Flavian and Evagrius to the see of Antioch,
Bonifacius XL, pope, successor to Felix IV., opportunity was taken to lay an accusation
of Roman birth but Gothic parentage, son of against Bonosus. The synod was unwilling
Sigisbald or Sigismund, was elected bp. of to consider the question, and transferred it
Rome on Sept. 17, 530, and consecrated five to Anysius, the bp. of Thessalonica and
days later in the basilica of Julius (Jaffe, metropolitan, and his suffragans, who, as a
Regesta Pont.). At the same time a rival party neighbour of Bonosus, might be supposed to
in the basilica of Constantine elected and con- be more fully acquainted with the merits of
secrated Dioscorus. The Roman church was the case (Labbe, ii. 1033). Bonosus was
saved from schism by the death of Dioscorus condemned for heretical teaching, deposed.

136 BOSPHORIUS CAECILIA


and his church closed against him. Bonosus Sweden, yet stands forth in history with a very
consulted Ambrose, who recommended pati- marked individuality, though the histories
ence and submission. This prudent counsel that have come down to us are mainly devoted
was not followed, and the difference was ex- to a narrative of the signs and wonders which
aggerated into a schism, which lasted into the God wrought by her. As to her Acts, Colgan
7th cent. Bonosus and his followers were has published six Lives in his Trias Thautfta-
widely accredited with heretical views respect- turga, and the BoUandists five. It is more
ing the conception and person of Ciirist. difficult to trace the historical points in St.
Mercator calls him an Ebionite, and a pre- Bridget's life than to recount the legendary
cursor of Nestorius {Dissert, i. de Haeres. accretions which testify to a basis of fact,
Nestor. § 6, ii. 315). But the Bonosians were could we but find it after so many centuries.
more usually charged with Photinianism In the legend there is no little beauty, and in
(Gennadius, de Eccl. Dogm. c. 52, " Photini- almost all we find an undercurrent of true
ani qui nunc vocantur Bonosiaci "). Whether human feeling and deep Christian discern-
these charges were well grounded, or were ment. (See some of them given at length
based on the general unpopularity of the sect, in Bp. Forbes's Kal. Scott. Saints, 288 seq.,
it is impossible to determine. Their baptism from Boece, Breviary of Aberdeen, and Col-
was pronounced valid by the 17th canon of gan's Tr. Thaum. For a full and critical
the second synod of Aries, a.d. 445, on the account of her life, see Lanigan, Eccl. Hist.
ground that, like the Arians, they baptized in Ir. i. 68, 335, and chaps, viii. and ix. passim ;

the name of the Trinity (Labbe, iv. 1013). Todd, Book of Hymns, i. 65 seq. O'Hanlon,;

But Gregory the Great, in a letter to the Irish Ir. Saints, ii. i seq. Baring-Gould, Lives of
;

bishops {Ep. lib. ix. 61), includes them in the Saints, ii. 14 seq.) Her chief residence
those whose baptism the church rejected be- was the monastery of Kildare, " cella quercus,"
cause the name of the Trinity was not invoked which she founded but affiliated houses of
;

(cf. Gennadius, de Eccl. Dogm., u.s.). They both men and women (" de utroque sexu ")
on their part rebaptized those who joined were raised all over the country, she being
them. The third council of Orleans, a.d. abbess above all other abbesses, and the
538, ordained that they who did so should be bishop with her at Kildare being similarly
arrested by the royal officers and punished. above all bishops in her other monasteries.
The Bonosians were anathematized by pope Montalerabert {Monks of the West, Edin. ii.
Vigilius {Ep. XV. ; Labbe, v. 333). [e.v.] 393-395) gives an account of St. Brigida and
BosphoriUS, bp. of Colonia in Cappadocia her monasteries, and places her birth at a.d.
Secunda, a confidential friend and corre- 467 and her death at a.d. 325. He says,
spondent of Gregory Nazianzen and Basil the "There are still 18 parishes in Ireland which
Great. His episcopate was prolonged through bear the name of Kilbride or the Church of
at least 48 years (Pallad. c. 20, p. 203), and Bridget " {ib. ii. p. 395, n.). The Irish annals,
must have commenced in 360. From the however, vary as to the date of her death,
letters of Gregory we learn that he and Bos- but the most probable, and resting on highest
phorius had lived together in youth, laboured authority, is a.d. 523 (O'Conor, Rer. Hib.
together, and grown old together (Greg. Ep. Scrip, iv. 13 ; Bp. Forbes, Kal. Scott. Saints,
141, 227). He had great influence over the 287). In Scotland the cultus of this saint was
gentler nature of Gregory, who speaks of him very extensive, her dedications being chiefly
with the highest respect, both for the purity found in the parts nearest to Ireland and
of his faith and the sanctity of his life, as well under Irish influence. (For a short list see Bp.
as for his successful exertions in bringing Forbes, Kal. Scott. Saints, 290-291.) [a. p.p.]
back wanderers to the truth, acknowledging
the benefit he had derived, both as hearer
and teacher, from him {Ep. 164, 225). He
persuaded Gregory to remain at Nazianzus
after his father's death, and to accept the Caecilia (1), St., a Roman lady, one of
unwelcome charge of the see of Constantinople. the four principal virgins and martyrs of the
Gregory bitterly complained of his unscrupu- Western Chiurch, who is commemorated in
lous importunity, but yielded {Ep. 14, 15). both the Latin and Greek churches on Nov.
In 383 Bosphorius was accused of unsound- 22, but of whom we have hardly any authen-

ness in the faith a charge which greatly tic account.
distressed Gregory, who wrote urgently in his The veneration paid to her can be traced
behalf to Theodore of Tyana, Nectarius, and to a very early period. Her martyrdom and
Eutropius {Ep. 225, 227, 164). Basil ad- that of her three companions is referred to
dressed to him a letter denying the charge of in nearly all the most ancient Latin breviaries
having excommunicated his bp. Dianius {Ep. and missals e.g. in the Sacramentary of
li.). He attended the second oecumenical pope Gregory the breviary and missal of
;

council at Constantinople in 381 (Labbe, ii. Milan ascribed to St. Ambrose the Moz- ;

956). Palladius speaks with gratitude of the arabic or Spanish liturgy, with proper prayers
sympathy shewn by him towards the bishops and prefaces and a grand office for her feast
;

banished in 406 for adherence to Chrysos- is contained in the Gallican missal, which is
tom's cause (Pallad. c. 20, p. 203). [e.v.] believed to have been in use in Gaul from the
Brigida (5), v., abbess of Kildare— Feb. i, 6th cent, down to the time of Charlemagne.
523. The designation " Fiery Dart " seems Her name appears in the Martyrology attri-
peculiarly appropriate for " the Mary of buted to Jerome, in that of Bede, and in all
Ireland," who, although her fame on the the others, and her martyrdom is placed at
continent is eclipsed by the greater reputation Rome. Yet it is very difficult, says Tille-
there of her namesake the widow-saint of mont, to find her true place in the chronology.
CAECILIA CAECILIA 137

The earliest writer who mentions her is For- her bath, and that the furnace should be
tunatus, bp. of Poictiers, at the end of the 6th heated with wood seven times hotter than it
was wont to be. But a heavenly dew falling
cent., who states that she died in Sicily be-
tween A.D. 176 and 180, under the emperor upon the spouse of Christ refreshed and cooled
M. Aurelius or Commodus. The Life of St. her body, and preserved her from harm. A
Caecilia by S\Tneon Metaphrastes, a hagio- day and a night the prefect waited for news
grapherof the loth cent., makes her contem- of her death. Then he sent one of his soldiers
porary with Urban, and places her martyrdom to behead her but though the sword smote
;

at Rome under Alexander Sevenis, c. 230 ;


her neck thrice, the executioner could not
the Greek menologies place it under Diocle- cut off her head, and he departed, leaving her
tian {284-305). On the other hand, the on the floor of her bath bathed in blood. For
Roman calendar drawn up at Rome under three days longer she lived, never ceasing to
pope Liberius, c. a.d. 352-366, contains no exhort the people whom she loved to continue
mention of her. This, indeed, is not a com- steadfast in the Lord, and watching over the
plete list of martyrs, but a list of the chief distribution of her last alms. Having given
feasts (Rossi, i. 116). Her body must, how- her house to the church, she gave up her
ever, have been there not long after this spirit into the hands of the living God. Urban
period ; for in the time of pope Symmachus and his deacons buried her in the cemetery of
(a.d. 498) there was a church of St. Caecilia Calixtus on the Via Appia near the third mile-
at Rome, in which he held a council. stone. Her house he consecrated to God as a
The account of her life and martATdom by church for ever. It is alleged that her body
Symeon Metaphrastes, to be found in Surius, was found at Rome by pope Paschal I. (a.d.
is of no authority. The narrative is full of 821), in the cemetery of Praetextatus, adjoin-
marvels and improbabilities, and the internal ing that of Calixtus on the Via Appia, and
evidence alone is quite sufficient to prove its that it was removed by him to the church of
legendary character, though some critics have St. Caecilia, which he was then rebuilding,
of late endeavoured to uphold its credibility, and which stands, as is said, on the site of
and to refer its compilation in its present form her house, at the extremity of the Trastevere.
to the commencement of the 5th cent. (cf. Here, it is said, her body was again dis-
Ceillier, //jsi. des Auieurs Sacres. vol. ii. Paris, covered at the end of the i6th cent, in the
1859, and see below). There can be little doubt time of Clement VIII. Baronius has given a
that these Acts of St. Caecilia were composed long account of the circumstances connected
to be read in the church of the saint on the with this pretended discovery, of which he
day of her feast. According to the legend, she was a witness (s. ann. 821).
was born at Rome of a noble family. She re- The legend of this saint has furnished the
solved, from love to her Lord, to devote her- subject of several remarkable pictures. The
self to Him by a vow of perpetual virginity. oldest representation of her is a rude picture
Her parents wished her to marry Valerian, a or drawing on the wall of the catacomb called
young Roman, who at that time was not a the cemetery of San Lorenzo, of the date
Christian. She went through the marriage probably of the 6th or 7th cent. (See d'Agin-
ceremonies but when alone with her young
; court, plate xi.) In the 13th cent. Cimabue
husband, told him of her vow, and Valerian painted an altar-piece, representing different
allowed her to keep it. At her entreaty, he episodes in the life of the saint for the church
sought out the retreat of Urban, and received dedicated to her at Florence. In both these
baptism at his hands. On returning to his she appears with the martyr's crown. In
spouse, wearing the white robe of a neophyte, fact, before the 15th cent. St. Caecilia is
he found her praying in her chamber, and seldom depicted with her musical instruments.
an angel of God at her side. In answer to She has generally the martyr's palm and the
Valerian's prayer, the angel promised that crown of red or white roses. When she came
his brother, Tiburtius, should become a to be regarded as the patron saint of musicians
Christian, and foretold that both brothers is unknown, nor have we any record of her
should receive the crown of martjrdom. In use of instruments of music. The most cele-
A.D. 230 Turcius Almachius, prefect of the brated representation of St. Caecilia as
city, took advantage of the emperor's absence patroness of this art is the picture by Raphael
to give free vent to his hatred of the Christians, (c. A.D. 15 13), now in the gallery of Bologna.

and daily put many to death. Valerian and In 1584, in the time of pope Pius V., an
Tiburtius were soon brought before his tri- academy of music was founded at Rome, and
bunal. After being scourged, the two brothers placed under the tutelage of St. Caecilia.
were commanded to offer incense to the gods. Thenceforward she came to be more and more
On refusing, they were condemned to be be- regarded as queen of harmony, and Dryden's
headed and given in charge to Maximus. So weU-known ode has rendered her familiar to
moved was he by their exhortations that us in this character.
in the night he and all his family, together For a more detailed account, we may refer
with the lictors, believed and were baptized. to the following : de Vitis Sanctorum, ed.
On the morrow his prisoners were beheaded Surius (Venice, 1581), torn. vi. p. 161, s.d.
at the place called Pagus Triopius on the Via Nov. 22 Acta Sanctorum, by the BoUandists,
;

Appia at the fourth mile from Rome. When s.d. April 14, p. 204; Baronii Annaies s. an.
the news reached the prefect that Maximus A.D. 821 Tillemont, vol. iii. pp. 259-689
;
;

also had become a Christian, he ordered him S. Caeciliae Acta a Laderchio (Rome, 1722),
to be scourged to death with leaden balls. 2 vols. 4to, incorporating the work of Bosio,
Soon afterwards he sent his officers to Caecilia with large additions ; Sacred and Legendary
and bade her sacrifice to the gods. As she Art, by Mrs. Jameson, 3rd ed. (Lond. 1857),
refused, he commanded her to be shut up in PP- 583-600; Ceillier, Histoire des Auteurs
138 CAECILIANUS CAECILIANUS
Sacres, vol. ii. (Paris, 1859) ;S. Cecile, par they might be honoured as martyrs and con-
Dom. Gueranger (Paris, 1874). [t.d.c.m.] fessors some, without doubt, in a spirit
;

Here may be added the ingenious ex- which commands our respect, but others in a
planation, given by bp. Fitzgerald, of how spirit which fostered the supposition that the
St. Caecilia became regarded as the patron martyr's cross would wash away for eternity
of music. She is described as steeling her the misery, follies, sins, and crimes of a whole
heart at her marriage festivities against all the life.
allurements to sensual pleasure, and among On the death of Mensurius, Caecilian was
these, special mention is made of the " sym- nominated as his successor. The part he had
phonia instrumentorum " to which she refused taken against the would-be martyrs was then
to hearken ;but " organis cantantibus die brought up against him. The religious world
nuptiarum " she made melody in her heart to of Carthage divided itself broadly into two
God, saying, " May my heart and body be sections, the moderate and rigoristic parties,
undefiled." The necessities of the pictorial or the supporters and opponents of the prin-
art demanded that each saint should be ciples of Caecilian. At the head of the latter
depicted with an appropriate and distinc- was a devout and wealthy lady named
tive symbol. Bp. Fitzgerald suggests that Lucilla, who had been severely rebuked by
St. Caecilia was hence represented in early the archdeacon for superstitious veneration
pictures with the organ prominent in her for martyrs' relics. The rigoristic party
Acts and that she was thence imagined to
; wished to the vacant see with one of their
fill
be a musician by those who did not under- own followers. Caecilian's party hastened
stand that she was only represented with an matters, and the archdeacon was consecrated
organ as other saints are depicted with the by Felix, bp. of Aptunga whether in the
;

instrument of torture by which they suffered. presence of any Numidian bishops or not
We may certainly believe that Dryden's seems uncertain. Secundus, primate of
" drew an angel down " had its origin in a Numidia and bp. of Tigisis, was presently
misunderstanding of pictures. The Acts invited to Carthage by the rigoristic party.
relate that on her wedding night she told He came, attended by 70 bishops, and cited
Valerianus that she was under the protection Caecilian before them. Felix of Aptunga was
of an angel who would punish him if he did denounced as a " traditor " [i.e. one who had
not respect her chastity, and whom he could delivered up the sacred WTitings in his pos-
see for himself if he would be baptized. This session), and consequently it was claimed that
no doubt is the angel who appears in pictures any ordination performed by him was invalid.
of St. Caecilia, and there is no ground for Caecilian himself was charged with unneces-
the idea that the angel came down to listen sary and heartless severity to those who had
to her music. visited the confessors in prison he was de-
;

Erbes (Zeitschrift f. Kirchengeschichte, ix. i) nounced as a " tjTannus " and a " carnifex."
thinks that the Acts of St. Caecilia are not He declined to appear before an assembly so
earlier than the end of the 5th cent. They prejudiced but professed his willingness to
;

not only exhibit a use of St. Augustine's satisfy them on all personal matters, and
work on the Trinity which appeared in a.d. offered, if right was on their side, to lay down
416, but coincidences in language, as well as his episcopal office, and submit to re-ordina-
in substance, make it probable that the whole tion. Secundus and the Numidian bishops
story of Caecilia is derived from the story answered by excommvmicating him and his
of Martinianus and Maxima told by Victor party, and ordaining as bishop the reader
Vitensis, I. 30. This would bring down the Majorinus, a member of Lucilla's household.
date of the Acts to c. a.d. 490. Erbes remarks The church of N. Africa now became a prey
that the original day of commemoration of to schism. The party of Caecilian broke off
St. Caecilia was Sept. 16 :Nov. 22 really from that of Majorinus, and the Christian
commemorates the dedication of the church world was scandalized by fulminations, ex-
of St. Caecilia, which probably took place communications, invectives, charges, and
under Sixtus III. between 434 and 440. countercharges. Both parties confidently an-
Concerning the neighbourhood of the burial- ticipated the support of the state but Con- ;

place of St. Caecilia in the catacombs to that stantine, now emperor of this part of the
of certain popes, Erbes holds that in the year Roman world, took the side of the Caecilianists.
236 a suitable biu^ial-place was being prepared In his largesse to the Christians of the province,
for the body of Pontianus, then brought from and in his edicts favourable to the church
Sardinia, as well as for that of Anteros who there, he expressly stipulated that the party
had died in Rome, that the site was furnished of Majorinus should be excluded their :

by the Caecilian famih', and that in order to views were, in his opinion, the " madness " of
make room for the two bishops the body of men of " unsound mind." The rigoristic
Caecilia was moved to an adjacent side party appealed to the justice of the emperor,
chamber. As to how Caecilia suffered martyr- and courted full inquiry to be conducted in

dom we have no authentic information, fo.s.] Gaul at a distance, that is, from the spot
Caecilianus (2), first archdeacon, then where passions and convictions were so strong
(a.d. 311) bp., of Carthage. Of importance and one-sided. A council met a.d. 313 at
in connexion with the Donatist controversy. Rome, in the Lateran, presided over by
When archdeacon, he resolutely supported Melchiades (Miltiades), bp. of Rome, who had
his bishop Mensurius in opposing the fanatical as his assessors the bishops of Cologne, Aries,
craving for mart>Tdom. The Christianity of and seventeen others. Caecilian appeared
N. Africa cxhiljited an extravagance in this with ten bishops Donatus, bp. of Casae
;

respect which reached its height after Diocle- Nigrae, in Numidia, headed the party of
tian's persecution. Men courted death that Majorinus. The personal charges against
;

CAESARIUS CAESARIUS 139

Caecilian were examined and dismissed, and training received from his parents. He be-
his party proclaimed the representatives of took himself to Alexandria, " the workshop of
the orthodox Catholic church ; Donatus him- every sort of education," for better instruc-
self was declared to have violated the laws tion in physical science than he could obtain
of the church, and his followers were to be in Palestine. There he behaved as a model
allowed to retain their dignity and office only student, being very careful in the matter of
on condition of reunion with Caecilian's party. companionship, and earnest in pursuit of
The bitterness of this decision was modified knowledge, more especially of geometry and
by Caecilian's friendly proposal of compromise astronomy. This last-named science he
but his advances were rejected, and the cry studied, says his panegyrist, in such wise as
of injustice raised. It was wrong, the rigorists to gain the good without the evil — a remark
pleaded, that the opinion of twenty should readily intelligible to those who are aware
overrule that of seventy ;and they demanded how deeply a fatalistic astrology was at that
first that imperial commissioners should in- period associated with the study of astronomy.
vestigate matters at Carthage itself, and that Refusing a post of honour and emolument
then a council should be summoned to examine at Byzantium, he came home for a time, but
their report, and decide upon its information. returned to the court and was much honoiured
Constantine met their wish. Jurists went to by Julian. There is a slight, but not per-
Carthage, collected documents, tabulated the haps irreconcilable, discrepancy between the
statements of witnesses, and laid their report funeral oration delivered by Gregory and the
before the bishops assembled (a.d. 314) at letter (17 or 51) which Gregory addressed to
Aries. This council, presided over by Marinus, his brother. The oration seems to depict
bishop of the see, and composed of about 200 Caesarius as from the first spurning all offers
persons, was the most important ecclesiastical of Julian, but the letter severely rebukes
assembly the Christian world had yet seen ;
Caesarius for becoming a member of the im-
and its decisions have been of permanent value perial household, and taking charge of the
to the church. As regarded Caecilian person- treasury. .Such a step is called a scandal in a
ally, the validity of his ordination was con- bishop's son, and a great grief to his mother.
firmed, the charge raised against his conse- Caesarius, however, finally avowed himself a
crator, Felix, being proved baseless and as Christian, and broke with Julian. His con-

;

regarded the general questions debated such duct, together with that of Gregory, caused
as traditorship, its proof or disproof ordina-
; Julian to exclaim, " Oh happy father oh !

tion by traditors, when valid or not baptism unhappy sons " Under subsequent emperors,
— ; !

and re-baptism canons of extreme import- more especially under Valens, Caesarius more
ance were passed. [Arles, Synod of, in than regained his former honours, and became
D. C. A.] a quaestor of Bithynia. A remarkable escape
The temper displayed by the victors was from a terrible earthquake at Nicaea, appar-
not calculated to soothe the conquered and
; ently c. A.D. 367 or 368, to which many dis-
an appeal was at once made from the council tinguished men fell victims, induced Caesarius,
to the emperor himself. Constantine was at his brother's suggestion, to arrange for
irritated ; but, after some delay, ordered the retirement from worldly cares. He received
discussion of the question before himself per- Baptism, and soon after died.
sonally. This occurred at Milan (a.d. 316). The riiVreij or Quaestiones (sive Dialogi) de
The emperor confirmed the previous decisions Rebus Divinis, attributed to this physician,
of Rome and Aries, and followed up his may be safely ascribed to some Caesarius.
judgment by laws and edicts confiscating the But the name was not an uncommon one, and
goods of the party of Majorinus, depriving some considerations seem to shew that the
them of their churches, and threatening to author was not Caesarius of Nazianzus.
punish their rebellion with death. Photius treats the supposed authorship as
From this time the schism in the N. African merely a current unexamined tradition, and
church lost its purely personal aspect, and the book refers to Maximus, who lived sub-
became a stern religious contest on questions sequently. [j.G.c]
of discipline. [Donatism.] Caecilian lived to Caesarius (3), St., sometimes called of Chalons
c. A.D. 345. (For authorities, etc., see Dona- (Cahillonensis sen Cabellinensis) from his birth-
tism.) [j.M.F.] place Chalons-sur-Saone but more usually
;

Caesarius (2), St., of Nazianzus, physician, known as Caesarius of Aries {Arelatensis) from
son of Gregory bp. of Nazianzus. brother of his see, which he occupied for forty years. He
St. Gregory of the same place, and youngest was certainly the foremost ecclesiastic in the
of the family, born probably c. a.d. 330. His Gaul of his own age. The date of his birth
death occurred in a.d. 368 or 369. The name lies between a.d. 468 and 470 the date of his
;

is simply a derivative from Caesar, originally death is Aug. 27, 542.


adopted in compliment to the reigning family.

Authorities.'
Authorities. —
(i) The biography, written by
The funeral oration by his his admiring disciple, St. Cyprian, bp. of
brother, St. Gregory Nazianzen (the 7th, in Toulon (Tolonensis) with the aid of other
some ed. the loth) two letters addressed by ecclesiastics (ed. by d'Achery and Mabillon
;'

Gregory to Caesarius and one to the Praeses in the A eta Sanctorum Ord. S. Benedicti, Venet.
Sophronius (numbered 17, 18, 19, or, more 1733. tom. i. p. 636, et sqq., also in the Bol-
commonly, 50, 51, 52), and a few lines in the landists' Acta Sanctorum under date of Aug.
Carmen de Vita Sua of the same. Photius, 27). (2) His will, first published by Baronius
Bibliotheca Cod. 210 (p. 168 ed. Bekker, [Annal. tom. vi. ad ann. 508) from archives
Berolini, 1824). preserved at Aries also given by Surius,

Life.' According to the testimony of his I.e.
;

a document of some interest for the


;

brother, Caesarius owed much to the careful student of Roman law, but thought by
140 CAESARIUS CAESARIUS
Brugsch (archives of the Society of Ancient these troubles, and the remainder of his epis-
History) to be a forgery of Hincmar of Rheims. copate was passed in peace.
(3) Acts of various councils, over all of which The directions of Caesarius for the conduct
Caesarius presided (Labbe, Concilia, torn. ii. of monks and nuns have been censured as
PP- 995-1098, ed. Parisiis, 1714). (4) The pedantic and minute. They certainly yielded
Regula ad Monachos and Regula ad Virgines, to the spread of the rising Benedictine rule,
drawn up by him for a monastery and a con- but must be judged by their age and in the
vent of his own foundation (ed. by Holstenius light of the whole spirit of monasticism.
in his Codex Regularum, and by P. de Cointe As the occupant of an important see, the
in his Annales Ecdesiastici Francorum). Tri- bishop of Aries exercised considerable influ-
themius, fixing the date of Caesarius much ence, official as well as personal. Caesarius
too late, fell into the error of supposing him was liberal in the loan of sermons, and sent
to be a Benedictine. (5) His sermons. Of suggestions for discourses to priests and even
these 40 were pubd. at Basle in 1558 ; 46 in bishops living in Spain, Italy, Gaul, and
a Bibliotheca Patrum, ed. at Leyden in 1677 ; France [i.e. the province known as the Isle
14 more in another Bibl. Patr. of Gallandi, of France). The great doctrinal question of
Venice 1776 (cf. Oudin in Commetit. de Script. his age and country was that of semi- Pelagian-
Eccles. vol. i. p. 1339) ; and 102, formerly ism. Caesarius, though evidently a disciple
ascribed to St. Augustine, are by the Bene- of St. Augustine, displayed in this respect
dictine editors assigned to Caesarius (Appen- considerable independence of thought. His
dix to torn. v. of the works of St. Augustine). vigorous denial of anything like predestination
Others have been separately pubd. by Baluz ;
to evil has caused a difference in the honour
but Neander justly remarks that a complete paid to hismemory, according as writers incline
collection of his sermons, conveying so much respectively towards the Jesuit or Jansenist
important information respecting the charac- views concerning divine grace.
ter of Caesarius and his times, still remains a The most important local council over which
desideratum [Church Hist. vol. v. p. 4, note). Caesarius presided was that of Orange. Its
Cf. also A. Malnory, St. Cesaire, eveque d' Aries statements on the subject of grace and free
(Paris, 1894); Arnold, Cesarius von Arelate, agency have been justly eulogized by modern
(Leipz. 1894). historians (see, e.g., Canon ]3right's Church
Life.— Caesarius was born at Chalons of History, ch. xi. ad fin.). The following pro-
" This
pious parents. His sister Caesaria afterwards positions are laid down in canon 25 :

presided over the convent which he founded, also do we believe, in accordance with the
and to her he addressed his Regula ad Virgines. Catholic faith, that after grace received
At the age of thirteen he betook himself to through baptism, all the baptized are able
the famous monastery of Lerins [Lerinum), and ought, with the aid and co-operation of
where he rapidly became master of all which Christ, to fulfil all duties needful for salvation,
the learning and discipline of the place could provided they are willing to labour faithfully.
impart. Having injured his health by But that some men have been predestinated
austerities, he was sent to Aries (Arelate) to to evil by divine power, we not only do not
recruit. There the bp. Bonus, having made believe, but if there be those who are willing
his acquaintance, ordained him deacon and to believe so evil a thing, we say to them with
then presbyter. For three years he presided all abhorrence anathema. This also do we
over a monastery in Aries but of this building
; profess and believe to our soul's health, that
no vestige is now left. in every good work, it is not we who begin,
At the death of Bonus the clergy, citizens, and are afterwards assisted by Divine mercy,
and persons in authority proceeded, as Bonus but that God Himself, with no preceding
himself had suggested, to elect Caesarius, merits on our part, first inspires within us
sincerely against hisown wish, to the vacant faith and love." On the express ground that
see. He was consecrated in a.d. 502, being these doctrines are as needful for the laity as
probably about 33 years of age. In the fulfil- for the clergy, certain distinguished laymen
ment of his new duties he was courageous and [illustres ac magnifici viri) were invited to
unworldly, but yet exhibited great power of sign these canons. They are accordingly sub-
kindly adaptation. He took great pains to scribed by 8 laymen, and at least 12 bishops,
induce the laity to join in the sacred offices, including Caesarius. [Pelagianism.]
and encouraged inquiry into points not made As a preacher, Caesarius displayed great
clear in his sermons. He also bade them knowledge of Holy Scripture, and was emin-
study Holy Scripture at home, and treat the ently practical in his exhortations. Besides
word of God with the same reverence as the reproving ordinary vices of humanity, he had
sacraments. He was specially zealous in often to contend against lingering pagan
redeeming captives, even selling church superstitions, as auguries, heathen rites on
ornaments for this purpose. the calends, etc. His sermons on O.T. are not
A notary named Licinianus accused Caesar- critical, but dwell on its typical aspects.
ius to Alaric as one who desired to subjugate Some rivalry appears to have existed in
the civitas of Aries to the Burgundian rule. the 6th cent, between the sees of Aries and
Caesarius was e.xiled to Bordeaux, but was Vienne, but was adjusted by pope Leo, whose
speedily, on the discovery of his innocence, adjustment was confirmed by Symmachus.
allowed to return. He interceded for the life Caesarius was in favour at Rome. A book
of his calunmiator. Later, when Aries was he wrote against the semi-Pelagians, entitled
besieged by Theodoric, apparently c. a.d. 512, de Gratia et Libero Arbitrio, was sanctioned by
he was again accused of treachery and im- pope Felix and the canons passed at Orange
;

prisoned. An interview with the Ostrogothic were approved by Boniface II. The learned
king at Ravenna in a.d. 513 speedily dispelled antiquary Thomassin believed him to have

CAESARIUS CAIUS 141

been the first Western bishop who received with one in this but proceeding to illus>
letter,
a pall from the pope. Guizot, in his Civilisa- trate its doctrine by two similes not found
hon en Fraif^e, cites part of one of his sermons in the Latin. The extract was printed by
as that of a representative man ; while Basnage in Canisius's Lectiones Antiquae
Neander has nothing but eulogy for his " un- (Antwerp, 1725), pp. 283-287. The second
wearied, active, and pious zeal, ready for paragraph may be taken from a different work,
every sacrifice in the spirit of love," and his but the MS. gives no indication of a change
moderation on the controversy concerning of author. Perhaps the Latin does not re-
semi-Pelagianism. This is indeed the great present the whole of the letter. Against the
glory of Caesarius. He more than anticipates genuineness it is urged that Caesarius is not
the famous picture drawn by Chaucer of a mentioned elsewhere by Chrysostom, though
teacher, earnest, sincere, and humble, but the letter implies that they had been intimate
never sparing reproof where needed. [j.g.c] from youth that the style (if so little of the
;

Cassarius (7). Among the works attributed Greek allows us to judge) is rugged and abrupt,
to Chrysostom is a treatise entitled ad Caesar- and the tone more scholastic than is common
iuni M onachum Epistola contra Apollinaristas. with Chrysostom ; that the earliest Greek
We only possess it in a Latin translation, author who quotes it as Chrysostom's is of
though a few fragments of the Greek original the 7th cent., though we should expect it to
are found in Anastasius and John Damascene have been used in the Eutychian disputes,
and elsewhere. This tract, the literary and quoted in the Acts of the 4th, 5th, and
history of which is very curious, is of disputed 6th councils. Le Quien also urged that lan-
authenticity. If it is genuine, Caesarius had guage is used which is not heard of until
embraced a religious life from his childhood employed by Cyril of Alexandria in contro-
and become a monk ; his piety had secured versy with Nestorius. Montfaucon, however,
Chrysostom's affection, and at one time he has produced precedents for much of this
had lived with him. Meeting with some language from Athanasius, and has clearly
ApoUinarists, he purchased a book by Apolli- proved that the letter was directed not against
narius which led him eagerly to embrace Eutychianism, but against Apollinarianism ;

those views. The intelligence caused great and with much probability he identifies the
grief to Chrysostom, then in exile at Cucusus, work assailed with a work of Apollinarius
who sent him this letter to refute the Apolli- quoted by Eulogius (ap. Photium, Cod. 230,
narian heresy. It contains a celebrated p. 84Q). This being so, we are more inclined
passage illlustrating the doctrine of the two to accept the letter as written while the
distinct natures in the one person of Jesus Apollinarian disputes were raging than, as
Christ by reference to the holy Eucharist, in Montfaucon conjectures, forged a century or
which he speaks of the nature of bread as two afterwards for use in the Eutychian
remaining in that which by the sanctifying controversy, since one of the arguments
grace of God is freed from the appellation of against its genuineness is that there is no
bread and thought worthy to be called the evidence that it ever was so used. On the
body of the Lord. This passage was adduced controversy as to the genuineness, see the
in controversy about the year 1548 by Peter authorities referred to by Fabricius, Bibl.
Mart^T, who deposited a transcript of it in Gr., ed. Harles, i. 699 ; Chrys. iii. 747-760,
archbp. Cranmer's library. After Cranmer's and xiii. 496, ed. Migne ; iii. 736-746, ed. Mont-

death this document was lost, and Martyr faucon Tillemont, vii.
; 629, and xi. 340-343 ;

was accused of having forged it (Perron, de Routh, Opuscula, ii. (479-488). [e-v.]
VEnchar. 381-3). His reputation was cleared Cainites. [Carpocrates.]
by the rediscovery by Emeric Bigot, in a Caius (2), an ecclesiastical writer at the
Florentine library, of doubtless the very MS. beginning of the 3rd cent., according to late
which Martyr, himself a Florentine, had used. authority, a presbyter of the Roman church.
Bigot in 1680 printed the epistle with Palla- Eusebius mentions but one work of his, to
dius's Life of Chrysostom. Previous to pub- which he refers four times (H. E. ii. 25, iii.
lication, through the influence of two censors 28, 31, vi. 20), and from which he gives some
of the Sorbonne, Louis XIV. ordered the short extracts. This was a dialogue pur-
leaves containing the letter to be cancelled. porting to be a report of a disputation held
For an account of the mutilation see Mend- at Rome during the episcopate of Zephyrinus
ham's /«rfe.v of Pope Gregory XVI. xxxii.-xxxiv. (a.d. 201-219) between Caius and Proclus, a
But Bigot having made known his discovery leader of the sect of Montanists. [Proclus.]
to literary friends, AUix (preface to Anastasius This dialogue is mentioned by the following
in Hexaemeron, 1682) protested against the writers, who may, however, have only known
suppression, and the cancelled leaves were it from the account given by Eusebius :

printed by le Moyne, Varia Sacra, 1683, by Hieron. de Vir. III. 59 Theod. Haer. Fab. ii.
;

Wake, 1686, and by Basnage, 1687. The 3 ;iii. 2, where the present text, doubtless
Jesuit Harduin published the epistle in 1689, by a transcriber's error, reads Patroclus in-
accepting it as Chrysostom's, and vindicating stead of Proclus (Niceph. Call. H. E. iv. 12,
the consistency of its doctrine with that of 20 Photius, Bibl. 48). Only the last of these
;

his church. It is accepted as genuine by attributes any other work to Caius. Theo-
Tillemont and Du Pin. The genuineness was doret says that he wrote against Cerinthus,
first assailed by Le Quien (1712) in the preface but is probably referring to a part of the
to his edition of John of Damascus, and his dialogue in question.
arguments were adopted and enlarged by In the short fragments preserved, Proclus
Montfaucon. Maft'ei found a Greek fragment defends the prophesyings of his sect by appeal-
also at Florence, professing to be from Chry- ing to the four daughters of Philip, who with
sostom, the first sentence of which is identical their father were buried at Hierapolis Caius, ;
142 CAIUS CALANDIO
on the other hand, shew his anta-
offers to mysteriously in a thunderstorm in the East,
gonist at the Vatican and on the Appian Way and his profligate son Carinus succeeded to
the tombs of the apostles " who founded this the empire at Rome. These events would
church." That Caius should have conducted seem to make a persecution, such as is assigned
a disputation at Rome does not of itself prove to this period by various martyr Acts, not in
that he, any more than Proclus, permanently itself improbable, and though the Acts in
resided there. Yet the expression cited con- question are untrustworthy (see Tillemont,
veys the impression that he did and Eusebius
; iv. 565), we are hardly justified in taking
was apparently of that opinion, for elsewhere Eusebius for a witness to the contrary, as
(vi. 20), having mentioned that Caius only far as concerns the West. The probability
counted St. Paul's epistles as thirteen, omit- is confirmed by the delay of the funeral of
ting that to the Hebrews, he adds that even in Eutychianus till July 25, 284 (v. Rossi, ii.
his own time " some of the Romans " did not 378). The persecution is not represented as
ascribe that epistle to the apostle. It is just general, but as aimed at a few obnoxious de-
possible that we are still in possession of votees, and Caius does not appear as leading,
the list of genuine apostolic WTitings which accompanying, or inciting them, but only as
Eusebius (I.e.) intimates that Caius gave, in exercising a fatherly supervision. Probably
order to rebuke the rashness of his opponents the persecution continued for some time under
in framing new Scriptures. Muratori attri- Diocletian. The early Pontifical, as well as
buted to Caius the celebrated fragment on Anastasius, makes Caius of Dalmatian origin
the canon published by him, which concludes and cousin to this emperor. The Acts of St.
with a rejection of Montanist documents. Susanna confirm this, but are untrustworthy
[MURATORIAN FRAGMENT.] But it iS difficult (Till. iv. 760). Caius is said in the early Pon-
to believe that if this were the list referred tifical to have avoided persecution by hiding
to by Eusebius, he would not have quoted it in the crypts. During his latter years the
more fully. Among the heretical writings Church must have enjoyed peace. He is said
rejected by Caius was a book of Revelations by Anastasius to have established the 6 orders
(Eus. ii. 25) pmporting to be written by a of usher, reader, exorcist, subdeacon, deacon,
great apostle and ascribed by Caius to Cerin- and presbyter, as preliminary stages necessary
thus, in which the author professes to have before attaining the episcopate, and also to
been shewn by angels that after the resurrec- have divided Rome into regions assigned to
tion Christ's kingdom should be earthly, that the deacons. He is said to have sent Protus
men should inhabit Jerusalem, should be the and Januarius on a mission to Sardinia (Mart.
slaves of lusts and pleasures, and should spend Rom. Baron. Oct. 25). He died in peace
a thousand years in marriage festivities. The according to the 6th-cent. Pontifical, and is
strongest reason for thinking that the book not called a martyr by any one earlier than
intended is the canonical book of the Revela- Bede and Anastasius. He was succeeded by
tion is that Dionysius of Alexandria (Eus. H. E. Marcellinus. A decretal is ascribed to him.
vii. 25) asserts that some of his predecessors From a confusion between the calends of
had maintained that the Apocalypse is the March and of May in the Mart. Hieron.,
work of Cerinthus, and describes their views Rabanus assigns his death, and Notker his
in language strongly resembling that of Caius. burial, to Feb. 20 (Rossi, ii. 104). His com-
There had been much speculation respect- memoration on July I in the Mart. Hieron. is
ing Caius himself (s.v. D. C. B. 4-vol. ed.) and ; unexplained {ib. p. 105). He was the last of
Lightfoot, in his Apostolic Fathers (Clement of the 12 popes buried in the crypt of Sixtus; in
Rome, vol. ii. p. 377), questions his existence. the cemetery of Callistus {ib. p. 105). He is
But Dr. Gwynn, of Dublin, pub. in Herma- therefore mentioned again, Aug. 9, at which
thena VI. some fragments of Capita adv. date a copy of the inscription set up by Sixtus
Caium, written by Hippolytus, which he had III. was placed in the margin of the ancient
discovered in Cod. Mus. Brit. Orient. 560. martyrology {ib. pp. 33-46). [e.b.b.]
These passages shew that he had attacked Calandio or Calendio {KaXavdlwy), succeeded
the Apocalypse of St. John, and treated the Stephen II. as bp. of Antioch, a.d. 481. He
book as inconsistent with the Holy Scriptures. owed his promotion to the episcopate to the
Harnack (Herzog.s) thinks it not improbable emperor Zeno and Acacius, bp. of Constanti-
that he had treated the Apocalypse as a work nople ; but the exact circumstances of his
of Cerinthus and as he would be at one in
;
appointment are uncertain. There is a large
this opinion with the Alogi of Asia Minor, a body of evidence (not, however, to be admitted
connexion between him and them may be without grave question) that Calandio's elec-
supposed. Nothing mtire is known with tion was of the same uncanonical character as
certainty of him (cf. Zahn, Gesch. des N. T. that of his predecessor in the see [Stephen
KanoHs, ii. 985 seq.). [g.s. and ed.] II.]; and that being at Constantinople on
Caius (3). Pope from Dec. 17 (16 ?) a.d. 283 business connected with the church of Antioch
(9 or 10 days after the death of his predecessor at the time of the vacancy of the see, he was
Eutychianus), to Apr. 22, a.d. 296, i.e. for chosen bishop, and ordained by Acacius but;

12 years 4 months i week [Pontifical, Bucher, the letter of pope Simplicius to Acacius, dated
p. 272), but only for 11 years according to July 15, a.d. 482, conveying his sanction of
Anastasius (c. 24) and to most Latins, and for Calandio's election (Labbe, Cone. iv. 1035),
15 years according to Eusebius, who speaks of suggests a possible confusion between the
him as a contemporary (H. E. vii. 32 Chron.; election of Calandio and of Stephen II.
284). He is probably the same as Caius the Calandio commenced his episcopate by
deacon, imprisoned with pope Stephen, a.d. excommunicating his theological opponents.
257 (Anastas. c. 24). Just as he was raised to He refused communion with all who declined
the chair, the stern old Roman Carus died to anathematize Peter the Fuller, Timothy
CALLIGONUS CALLISTUS 143

the Weasel, and the Encyclic Basiliscus


of almost certainly the contemporary bp. of
condemning the decisions of the council of Portus, gives an account of the life of Callistus
Chalcedon (Evagr. H. E. iii. lo Niceph. H. E.
; which is scarcely credible respecting one of
XV. 28). He is reported to have endeavoured the bishops of Rome, who had before been
to counteract the Monophysite bias given to honoured as a saint and martjT. According-
the Trisagion by Peter the Fuller in the ly, much controversy has sprung up round the
addition of the words 6 aTavpwSds 81' rju-S.?, by names and Hippolytus. It Hippo-
of Callistus
prefixing the clause Xpidre BacnXev (Theod. lytus is be believed, Callistus was an
to
Lector, p. 556 b.) Calandio translated the unprincipled adventurer ; if CaUistus can be
remains of Eustathius, the banished bp. of defended, grave doubt is thrown upon the
Antioch, with the permission of Zeno, from veracity of Hippolytus. Bunsen and Words-
Philippi in Macedonia, where he had died, to worth adopt the former view ; Dollinger the
his own city— a tardy recognition of the latter, in an ingenious treatise translated by
falsehood of the charges against Eustathius, Dr. Plummer (T. &. T. Clark, 1876). The
which had the happy result of reuniting to story as told by Hippolytus is lifelike and
the church the remains of the party that still natural, and, however much we may allow
called itself by his name (Theod. Lector, for personal rancour, we cannot but believe
p- 577; Theophanes, p. 114). Calandio feU it to be substantially true.
into disfavour and was banished by the Em- He tells us that Callistus was originally a
peror Zeno, at the instigation of Acacius, to slave in the household of a rich Christian called
the African Oasis, a.d. 485, where, probably, Carpophorus. His master intrusted to his
he died. The charge against him was that of charge a bank in the Piscina Publica, where
having erased from the diptychs the name Callistus induced his fellow-Christians to
of Zeno, as the author of the Henoticon and ;
deposit their savings upon the security of the
of having favoured Illus and Leontius in their name of Carpophorus. The bank broke, and
rebellion, a.d. 484. But the real cause of his Callistus fled, but Carpophorus tracked him
deposition was the theological animosity of to Portus, and found him on board an out-
Acacius, whom he had offended by writing a ward-bound ship. The slave threw himself
letter to Zeno accusing Peter Mongus of adul- overboard in despair, but was picked up, and
tery, and of having anathematized the decrees delivered to his master, who brought him
of the council of Chalcedon (Evagr. H. E. ii. back and put him to the pistrinum, or mill
16 Liberatus Diaconus, Breviar. c. xviii.
;
;
worked by the lowest slaves, for a punishment.
Gelasius, Ep. xiii. ad Dardan. Episc. Labbe,
;
After a time, however, he was set at liberty,
iv. 1208-1209, XV. ad Episc. Orient, ib. 1217). and again attempted suicide, and for this
On his deposition, the victorious Peter the purpose raised a riot in a synagogue of the
Fuller was recalled to occupy the see of Jews. By them he was brought before
Antioch. [e.v.] Fuscianus, the praefectus urbi, who, in spite
Calligonus, eunuch and chamberlain to of the fact that Carpophorus claimed him as
Valentinian IL, insulted Ambrose, a.d. 385 his slave, condemned him, as a disturber of
(Ambr. Ep. xx. (i), iii. p. 859). He conveyed public worship allowed by the Roman laws,
a message, or reported a saying, of the em- to be sent to the mines of Sardinia [Philoso-
peror's, and added, " While I am alive, dost phumena, ed. Miller, pp. 286, 287).
thou contemn Valentinian ? I will remove His supposed desire for death certainly
thy head from off thee." Ambrose answered, seems an inadequate motive for raising the
"'God giant thee to fulfil thy threat for I riot in the Jewish synagogue.
; Dollinger
shall suffer what bishops suffer, and thou wilt supposes that, while claiming his debts at the
do what eunuchs do. And would that God hands of members of the Jewish synagogue,
would avert them from the church, that they his zeal for religion impelled him to bear
might turn all their weapons on me." Calli- witness for Christ, and that thus his exile to
gonus was afterwards put to death on a Sardinia was a species of martyrdom for
peculiarly infamous charge (Augustine, contra Christianity (Dollinger, Hippolytus u. Kallis-
Julianmn, vi. 14, vol. x. 845). Tillemont tus, p. 119). The date of his exile is proxi-
(x. 175) supposes that these events were in mately fixed, since Fuscianus served the office
the mind of Ambrose when he wrote the 6th of praefectus urbi between a.d. 188 and a.d.
chapter of his book on Joseph. This is very 193 (Bunsen's Hippolytus, i. 138). Some time
probable, but the further inference that that after, proceeds Hippolytus, Marcia, the
book was written two years later seems wholly Christian mistress of Commodus, persuaded
erroneous. The event that occurred after two the emperor to grant an amnesty to Christians
years was the usurpation of Maximus. It undergoing punishment in Sardinia and ;

is possible that Ambrose encountered two Callistus, at his own entreaty, was released,
eunuchs. Cf. also de Broglie, VEglise et although his name was not on the list (supplied
I'Empire, vi. 173. [e.b.b.] by the then bp. Victor) of those intended to
CallistUS (1) (i. q. formosissimus later benefit by Marcia's clemency.
; Callistus re-
spelt Calistus, but Calixtus first in nth cent., appeared in Rome, much to the annoyance of
Bunsen's Hippolytus, i. 131, note), the suc- Victor, for the outrage on the synagogue was
cessor of pope Zephyrinus in a.d. 218, said to recent and notorious. He therefore sent him
have been a Roman, and the son of Domitius. to Antium, making him a small monthly
Nothing was known of Callistus, except that allowance {Philosophumena, p. 288). Milman
the Martyrologium Romanum contained a dates this c. a.d. 190, in the very year of
tradition of his martyrdom, till the discovery Victor's accession {Lat. Christ, i. 55, note).
of the Philosophumena in 1850. This work, That Carpophorus's runaway slave should
which first appeared under the name of be of such importance that the pope should
Origen, but is now ascribed to Hippolytus, buy him off with an allowance, and insist upoa
I

144 CALLISTUS CAPRASIUS


bis residing at a distance, shews that Callistus proclaim a heresy quite as deadly as the
was already thought to be no ordinary man. other. If he is to be believed, he is right in
He must have resided at Antium for a long thus characterizing it. The Father and the
time for Zephyrinus, who did not succeed
;
Son, Callistianism said, were one together
;

Victor till A.D. 202, recalled him. The new they made the Spirit, which Spirit took flesh
bishop " gave him the control of the clergy, in the womb of the Virgin. Callistus, says
and set him over the cemetery " {Phil. p. 288). Hippolytus indignantly, is as Patripassian as
This suggests that Callistus had been ordained Sabellius, for he makes the Father suffer with
at Antium and the words " set him over the
;
the Son, if not as the Son (ib. pp. 289-330).
cemetery " {els t6 KOLfjLrjrrjpiov KaTeffTrjaev) Hippolytus brings against him several other
have a special interest for one of the largest
;
grave accusations of further relaxing the bonds
catacombs in Rome is known as the Coe- of church discipline (ib. pp. 290, 291) e.g.
meterium Sti. Calixti. That this should have (i) He relaxed the terms of readmission into
been intrusted to the same man to whom also the church accounting no sin so deadly as to
:

was given the control of the clergy proves be incapable of readmission, and not exacting
what a high value was set upon this first penance as a necessary preliminary. (2) He
public burial-place of the Christians in Rome. relaxed the terms of admission into orders,
Thirteen out of the next eighteen popes are ordaining even those who had been twice or
said to have been buried here and the names
; thrice married and permitting men already
;

of seven of the thirteen (Callistus himself ordained to marry freelv. (3) He also re-
being one of the exceptions) have been laxed the marriage laws of the church, thereby
identified from old inscriptions found in one bringing them into conflict with those of the
crypt of this cemetery. state ; and Hippolytus says that a general
Now (a.d. 202) for the first time Callistus immorality was the consequence. DoUinger,
became a power in the Roman church. To however, pertinently observes that Hippolytus
Hippolytus, who held a double position in does not even hint a charge of personal im-
that church [Hippolytus], he became especi- morality against Callistus (DoUinger, Hippo-
ally obnoxious. Being set over the Roman lytus und Kallistus, p. 195). (4) He allowed
clergy, he was over Hippolytus, who was the second baptisms, which perhaps means that
presbyter of one of the Roman cardines or a repetition of baptism was substituted for
churches but as a presbyter himself, he was
;
the penance which had been necessary at the
inferior ecclesiastically to one who was also readmission of grievous sinners into the
the bp. of Portus. Hippolytus claims to have church. This is the only accusation which
detected Callistus's double-dealing from the DoUinger meets with a distinct contradiction,
first ; but tells us that Callistus, aspiring to on the ground that no such practice was known
be bp. of Rome himself, would break openly in the later Roman church (p. 189). Yet it
with neither party. The question which now surely is not as inconceivable as it seemed to
divided the church was that of the Monarchia, him that later bishops of Rome might have
or how to reconcile the sovereignty of the reversed the acts of their predecessor.
Father with the Godhead of the Son. Cal- Callistus is said to have died in a.d. 223
listus, who had obtained a complete ascend- (Eus. H. E. vi. 20). Tradition tells us that
ancy over the mind of Zephyrinus, according he was scourged in a popular rising, thrown
to Hippolytus an ignorant and venal man, out of a window of his house in Trastevere,
took care to use language now agreeing with and flung into a well. This would account for
the Sabellians, now with Hippolytus. But no epitaph being found to Callistus in the
he personally sided with Sabellius, called papal crypt of his own cemetery in the cata-
Hippolytus a Ditheist, and persuaded Sabel- combs. E. Rolffs, in Texte und Unterstich.
lius, who might otherwise have gone right, to (1893), xi. 3 P. Battifol, I.e Decret de Callist.
;

coalesce with the Monarchians. His motive, in Etudes d'Hist. etde Thiol. (Paris, 1902), pp.
says Hippolytus, was that there might be two 69 seq. [g.h.m.]
parties in the church which he could play off Caprasius (2), St., presbyter at Lerins (ITsle
against each other, continuing on friendly de St. Honorat). Having a great desire to
terms with both (Phil. p. 289). become a hermit, he distributed his goods to
We find from Tertullian that Zeph\Tinus the poor and with St. Honoratus ultimately
began, no doubt under Callistus's influence, fixed on the isle of Lerins, described as a
the relaxation of discipline which he himself frightful desert where nothing was to be seen
afterwards carried further when he became but serpents and other venomous creatures.
bishop. Under Zephyrinus the practice first There Honoratus built a monastery, into
obtained of allowing adulterers to be re- which he received many monks from the
admitted after public penance (de Pudicitid, neighbouring countries. It was under the
i. 21 DoUinger, pp. 126-130).
; Zephyrinus discipline of Caprasius and Honoratus, who
died in a.d. 218, and Callistus was elected are said to have made it the home of saints.
bishop instead and Hippolytus does not
; Hilarius describes their new monastery as
scruple to avow that by this act the Roman being distinguished for chastity, faith, wisdom,
church had formally committed itself to justice, truth. They also built in the island
heresy. He regards his own as the orthodox a church, of which Honoratus became minister.
church, in opposition to what he henceforth Caprasius died c. 430, and is commemorated
considers as only being the Callistian sect on June i. (Acta Sanctorum, Jun. i, p. jy ;

(Phil. pp. 289, 292). Yet the first act Hilar. Arelat. de Vita S. Honorati, cap. ii. Patr.
apparently of Callistus as bishop was towards LaM.p. 1255; EucheriusLugd. deLaud. Eremi,
conciliating his rival. He threw off, perhaps 42, Patr. Lat. 1. p. 711 Sidonius ApoU Cartn.
;

actually excommunicated (dTr^uiire), Sabellius. § 384, Patr. Lat. Iviii. p. 721 Ceillier, Hist, des
;

But he only did this, says Hippolytus, to Auteurs Sacres et Eccles. t. viii. p. 439.) [c.ii.]
CAPREOLUS CARACALLA 145

Capreolus, bp. of Carthage, known in con- killed on the way from Edessa to Carrhae,
nexion with the council of Ephesus, a.d. 431. April 8, 217. His mother, according to con-
N. Africa at that time being ravaged by the temporary authorities, was Julia, a Syrian
Vandals under Genseric, it was impossible to woman, whom Severus had married because
convene the bishops to appoint representatives of certain prophecies. Spartianus, in the
from the church of Carthage at the council. time of Constantine, assures us that Julia was
The bishop, however, in his zeal for the his stepmother, and that his mother was
catholic doctrine, dispatched an elaborate Severus's first wife Marcia. This would make
letter in its defence, which is extant, both in his story somewhat less horrible, but compels
Greek and Latin. There is also extant an- the historian at the cost of some inconsistency
other letter by Capreolus on this controversy, to refer his birth to 174, or earlier.
written in answer to inquiries addressed to The principal authorities are TertuUian, ad-
him from Spain, by Vitalis and Constantius. dressing Scapula, governor of Africa, in 2-1 1 ;

Both letters are in Migne, vol. liii. p. 843. the sober, contemporary, and apparently im-
Also a fragment of the letter which he partial, narrative of Herodian (bks. vii. viii.) ;

addressed to Theodosius, who convoked the the abridgment, by the very late compiler
council, is quoted by Ferrandus in his letter Xiphilinus, of the 77th book of the contem-
to Pelagius and Anatolius, c. 6, Patr. Migne, porary historian Dion Cassius, with which the
Ixvii. 925. The Sermo de Tempore Barbarico, compiler seems to have incorporated fragments
on the Vandal invasion of Africa, usually of other works of a like early date the narra-
;

attributed to St. Augustine, and other ser- tive written for Constantine by Lampridius
mons in which Augustine describes the Vandal Spartianus in the Historia Augusta laws,
;

ravages, are considered by Tillemont (xvi. 502) coins, inscriptions (see Clinton), and especially
to have been written by Capreolus (Hardouin, a record in the Digest, bk i, tit. 5, 1. 17, from
i. 1419-1422 Fleury, xxv. 41 Till. xii. 559, the 22nd book of Ulpian.
; ;

xiii. 901, xiv. 376, 399, xvi. 495, 502, 789), Dion charges him with inheriting all the
but this is doubtful. [d.b.] worst features of the races from which he
Tillemont supposes Capreolus to have suc- sprang on his father's side, the braggart
;

ceeded to the see of Carthage shortly before levity of the Gaul and the truculence of the
the death of Augustine {430), as the letter African on his mother's, the tricksiness of
;

convoking the council of Ephesus seems to the Syrian. TertuUian {ad Scap. c. 4) calls
have been addressed to him and to Augustine him Antoninus, and informs us that " his
(xii. 559). Another object of his letter to father Severus had a regard for Christians ;

Ephesus was to implore the council not to re- . and Antoninus


. . . was brought up on
. .

open the question of the Pelagian heresy. Christian milk. And, moreover, Severus knew
When his letter was read, Cyril and all the most illustrious men and most illustrious
bishops exclaimed, " That is what we all say ;
women to be of this sect, and not only did not
that is what we all wish," and they ordered it hurt, but honoured [exornavit or, more pro-
to be inserted in the Acts of the council (Vine. bably, exoneravit, exonerated] them by the wit-
Lerin. c. 31 ;Labbe, Cone. iii. 529). He is ness he bore them, and withstood the raging
probably the " priest " in Africa in the time populace." It has been inferred that the young
of Aspar, mentioned in the Book of Promises, prince was not only brought up amid Christian
ascribed to Prosper (i. 4, c. 6). influences, but had a Christian wet-nurse.
It is instructive to note the importance We can easily conceive how injurious it must
that he attaches to the descent of the God-man have been for the child to find the Christians in
into Hades. Chaps. 5-12 are taken up with the palace screened, while yet he was taken to
answering the new error. He quotes Ps. xvi. see shows of wild beasts where Christians were
10 John X. 18 I. Cor. ii. 7, 8 II. Cor. v. 18, thrown to them to devoiu:.
; ; ; Spartianus tells
19 ; Heb. i. 2, 3 Col. ii. 15
; ; Heb. x. 28-30;
us that he was a most charming child, quick at
John XX. 17. He does not quote John xvi. learning, engaging with his prattle, and of a
32, but says (c. 13) that it would be endless to very tender heart. " If he saw condemned
adduce all scripture testimonies. His answer criminals thrown to the beasts, he cried, or
to the argument from Ps. xxii. i is drawn from looked away, which more than won the hearts
the latter half of the verse (as it is in the of the people. At seven years of age, when he
LXX and Vulgate, which are not improbably heard that a boy that was his playmate had
right), " Far from my health are the words of been severely beaten for Jewish superstition,
my failings," and based on the mystery of the it was a long while before he would look at his
union of the two natures, " that human con- own father or the boy's father again, or at the
dition should know itself " (c. 5). people who had him flogged. By his own in-
The death of Capreolus is generally dated tercession he restored their ancient rights to the
c. A.D. 435. His burial was commemorated people of Antioch and Byzantium, who had
in the calendar of Carthage between July 21 helped Niger against his father. It was for his
and 30 the note of the day is lost, [e.b.b.] cruelty that he took an aversion to Plautianus.
;

Caracalla, the nickname of M. Aurelius But all this was only while he was a boy [sed
Severus Antoninus Bassianus, son of Lucius haec ptier]." The " Jewish superstition " has
Septimius Severus, born April 4, 188, declared been interpreted, with great probability, to
Caesar a.d. 196, three years after his father's mean Christianity. The Plautianus men-
accession ; succeeded to the empire in con- tioned was, teste Herodian, a vile tyrant, all-
junction with his brother Geta, Feb. 211, sole powerful with Severus, whose daughter Cara-
emperor after slaying bis brother in his caUa was compelled to marry, much against
mother's arms a.d. 212, in Gaul 213, in Ger- his will, in the hope of reforming him from
many and on the Danube 214, at Antioch and certain low tastes, such as won him the favour
Alexandria 215, marched against Parthia 216, of the city populace,
10
.

146 CARACALLA CARITAS


Spartianus tells us that when Caracalla capital was entitled to receive every month,

emerged from boyhood, before his accession, at a cheap rate the indigent quite gratuitous-

he was so changed, so stern, that no one would ly a certain amount of corn or bread. This
have known him ; whereas his brother Geta, was one of the chief drains upon the revenue,
who had been an unpleasing child, was very and one of the main causes of extortion in the
much improved as he grew up. His narrative, provinces. But Augustus laid a tax on
and the abridgment of Dion, afford no clue citizens from which aliens were exempt, a tax
to the enmity that sprang up between the which made the franchise in many cases a
brothers, and deeper principles seem to have burden to be declined rather than a boon to be
been involved than mere fraternal jealousy. coveted, a duty of five per cent, on all be-
Caracalla's early life was such as to teach him quests. Nerva and Trajan, however, exempted
heart-hardening dissimulation ; Tertullian, the jiassage of moderate inheritances from
while the brothers yet ruled jointly, urges at parent to child, or vice versa (Plin. Paneg. 37,
once the uncertainty of human life, and the 38). Caracalla, by raising the provincials to
probability that Caracalla would favour the the franchise, did not free them from the
Christians ; and it is the fact that his victory tribute they owed before, but imposed this
coincided with a general and prolonged cessa- additional burden, which he doubled in
tion of a long and cruel persecution. amount, and which involved the odious intru-
We cannot tell whether he had any higher sion of the taxgatherer in seasons of domestic
motives than a mean malice and uneasy envy bereavement. The act seems to synchronize
in his murder of his brother, and whether the with a congiariwn or largess to the populace
mother, for whose sake he claimed to have in A.D. 214. Thenceforward Caracalla's laws,
done it and whom he would not allow to utter wherever promulgated, seemed to be dated at
or even listen to a complaint, ever forgave Rome. Oppressive as were the effects of the
him. The incredible charge of incest was act, it seems yet to have been welcomed. It -

afterwards brought against them. But there was but fair, thought Augustine, that rustics
is little doubt as to the results of the deed. who had lands should give food to citizens who
He did not become a Christian, and the ancient had none, so long as it was granted as a boon
gods of the state were the last to whom he and not extorted as a right.
had recourse. He patronised Philostratus, But besides its effects as a financial measure,
who wrote for his mother and for him the Life Caracalla's act broke down the barriers of so-
of Apollonius of Tyana. He thus fostered one ciety annulled, as far as any imperial institu-
;

of the chief counterfeits of Christianity. He tion could, the proud old sovereign common-
gathered round him all who professed to read wealth, the queen of nations, whose servants
the future, and he worshipped the spirits of and ministers the emperors had ever professed
the dead. But they could not rid his ears of to be opened the command of armies to
;

his brother's dying cry, fi^rep, /j.7JTep, reKovaa, unlettered barbarians ; removed the bars to
TiKoxJaa, ^oTjdei, cr<pd^ofiai. He continued to the influx of Greek and Syrian and Egyptian
court the city populace, and enriched Rome corruption into Rome reduced the subjects
;

with magnificent baths, which even in ruins to a level, above which only the emperor, the
are the most superb monuments of refined minion of the army, towered supreme.
luxury. But his fits of savagery must have In earlier times St. Paul's Roman citizenship
made it hard for him to continue a favourite had stood him in good stead and in the story
;

of the populace. Henceforth he relied mainly of the martyrs in Gaul under M. Aurelius the
on his army, and sought ease of mind in Roman citizens had been reserved till the
excitement. Both necessities involved ex- emperor's will was known. A boon now so
pense. Whatever impulse he gave to the widely diffused could scarcely retain the same
corruption of the capital, he himself con- value. But we hear no more of Christians
tentedly shared the roughest privileges of the being crucified, unless they were slaves, or
soldiers. But that alone could not secure their first reduced to slavery. Unutterably horri-
affection. In the first day of his crime he ble as the tortures devised against them were,
had lavished the wealth his father had been they were no longer commonly thrown to the
eighteen years in acquiring. New sources of beasts as a show. They suffered by the sword
revenue were needed. at last, and all their tortures were such as
It is the method that Caracalla adopted to might befall any citizen of Rome who trans-
raise a revenue that gives him his main claim gressed the mandate of the emperor. [D. C. A
to a place in the catalogue of men whose lives Persecution ;
Torture.] Thus martyrdom,
affected the Christian church. His act, as instead of the obstinacy of an abject alien
Gibbon has shewn, marked an era in the de- superstition, became the bold and cheerful
cline of the empire. But more than that, it resistance of free citizens to the arbitrary will
affected very greatly the position of Christians of one who, when he began to torture, became
in all future persecutions. It is this indeed a barbarous tyrant. [e.b.b.]
mainly that enables us to pronounce with Caritas. Charity with her virgin sisters.
certainty that the act was his, and belonged Faith and Hope, and their mother Wisdom,
to no earlier date. " All who are in the seem to have been the names of real martyrs.
Roman world," says Ulpian, " have been The names were very natural ones for Chris-
made citizens of Rome by an institution of the tians to give to their children. On the Aurelian
emperor Antoninus." " A most grateful and Way, in the church of St. Pancras, lay Sophia
humane deed " exclaims Augustine {de Civ. with her three daughters Sapientia, with her
! :

Dei, v. 17, vol. vii. 161), and immediately daughters Fides, Spes. and Charitas, as Wil-
subjoins the proviso that made the boon so liam of Malmesbury calls them but the Latin
;

equivocal. At a stroke the Roman world names nowhere else occur in this order, the
was pauperized. Every citizen resident in the Greek names, when given in full, always do.

CARPOCRATES CARPOCRATES 147


Sophia, Pistis, Elpis, Agape, are said to have ithad been carried round with the unbegotten
been a mother and daughters who suffered in God, and therefore power [or a " power "] had
September, and whose relics were transferred been sent from God enabling Him to escape the
to the church of St. Silvester. On the other makers of the world. Though brought up in
hand, Sapienta, Spes, Fides, Caritas, are said Jewish customs. He had despised them, and
by Ado to have suffered Aug. i, and were therefore had received powers enabling Him to
buried on the Appian Way, in the crypt of destroy the passions which are given to men as
St. CaeciJia. In that crypt has been found the a punishment. But in this there was nothing
inscription, piste spei sorori dulcissimae special : others might be the equals or the
FECIT. In the same place, if we rightly under- superiors not only of Peter or Paul, but of our
stand de Rossi, was found agape qve vxit Lord Himself. Their souls, too, might remem-
ANNIS VGINTI ET SEX IN PACE Agape, who ber the truths they had witnessed ; if they
lived twenty-six years in peace. There is no despised the rulers of the world as much as
statement of relationship in the notices of the Jesus did, they would be given the same privi-
tombs on the Appian Way. It appears pro- leges as He, and higher if they despised them
bable that Ado has confounded the widely more. Thus the Carpocratians gave honour,
celebrated martyrs who are said to have suf- but not an exclusive honour, to Christ. They
fered in September under Adrian, with the had pictures of Him, derived, it was said,
occupants of some Christian tombs in a crypt from a likeness taken by Pilate's order and ;

where there were many celebrations early in images, which they crowned and treated with
August. The Menology gives the ages of other marks of respect ;but this they did also
Faith, Hope, and Love as 12, 10, and 9. (De in the cases of Pythagoras, Plato, Aristotle,
Rossi, Rom. Sott. i. 180-183, ii- i7i ff-. pl- Iv. and other philosophers.
10; Bede, Mart. July i, Bede, Mart. Auct. In the opening statement concerning the
June 23 ; Usuard, Aug. i ; Menol. Basil. making of the world, the doctrine ascribed to
Sept. 16.) [E.B.B.] Carpocrates is almost identical with that as-
CarpocrateS (KapTTovpciTTjs, Irenaeus Kapiro- cribed to Saturninus
; ; but in the next para-
/cpas, Epiphanius and Philaster, both probably graph the language is distinctly taken from the
deriving this form from the shorter treatise myth in Plato's Phaedrus, in which human
against heresies by Hippolytus), a Platonic knowledge is made to be but a recollection of
philosopher who taught at Alexandria early in what the soul had seen when carried round
the 2nd cent., and who, incorporating Chris- with the gods in their revolution, and per-
tian elements into his system, became the mitted to see the eternal forms of things.
founder of a heretical sect mentioned in one The doctrine of the duty of despising the
of our earliest catalogues of heresies, the list rulers of the world received among the Car-
of Hegesippus, preserved by Eusebius {H. E. pocratians an interpretation which enabled
iv. 22). These heretics are the first of whom them to practise immorality without scruple.
Irenaeus expressly mentions that they called Things in themselves were indifferent ; no-
themselves Gnostics ; Hippolytus first speaks thing was in its own nature good or evil, and
of the name as assumed by the Naassenes or was only made so by human opinion. The
Ophites {Ref. v. i). Of all the systems called true Gnostic might practise everything nay, —
Gnostic, that of Carpocrates is the one in it was his duty to have experience of all.
which the Hellenic element is the most strong- A doctrine concerning the transmigration of
ly marked, and which contains the least of souls which was taught by other Gnostic sects,
what is necessarily Jewish or Oriental. He is and which harmonized well with Platonic
described as teaching with prominence the teaching, was adopted by the Carpocratians in
doctrine of a single first principle : the name the form that a soul which had had its com-
IxofaoiKi) 7vcDins, given by Clement of Alex- plete experience passed at once out of the
andria (Strom, iii. 2) to the doctrine of the dominion of the rulers of the world, and was
school which he founded, is made by Neander received up to society with the God above
to furnish the key to the whole Carpocratian them those which had not were sent back to
:

system ; but possibly is only intended to finish in other bodies that which was lacking
contrast with the doctrine of the Valentinian to them but all ultimately would be saved.
;

teachers, who thought it necessary to provide But as was also taught by the Basilidians of
the first Being with a consort, in order that Irenaeus and by the Ophites, salvation be-
emanations from Him might be conceivable. longed to the soul alone ;there would be no
Carpocrates taught that from the one unknown resurrection of the body. In conformity with
unspeakable God different angels and powers this theory was interpreted the text from the
had emanated, and that of these the lowest in Sermon on the Mount, " Agree with thine
the series, far below the unbegotten Father, adversary quickly." The "adversary" (whom,
had been the makers of the world. The privi- Epiphanius tells us, they named Abolus, a
lege of the higher souls was to escape the rule corruption, doubtless, from the Diabolus of
of those who had made the world ;even by Irenaeus) was one of the world-making angels,
magical arts to exercise dominion over them, whose office it was to conduct the soul to the
and ultimately, on leaving the world, to pass principal of these angels, " the judge." If he
completely free from them to God Who is found that there were acts left undone, he de-
above them. Jesus he held to be a mere man livered it to another angel, " the officer," to
naturally born of human parents, having no shut it up " in prison " —
i.e. in a body
prerogatives beyond the reach of others to had paid the last farthing. The doctrine that
until it

attain. His superiority to ordinary men con- we ought to imitate the freedom with which our
sisted in this, that His soul, being steadfast and
Lord despised the rulers of the world raises the
pure, remembered those things which it had
question. Did Carpocrates intend to impute
seen in the revolution (rg irepKpopq.) in which
immorality to Him ? On this point Carpo-

148 CARPOCRATES CARPOCRATES


crates was misunderstood either by Hippolytus use made of the Sermon on the Mount. Celsus
or by his own disciples. According to Hippo- probably refers to this rite (Origen, v. 64) when
lytus, Carpocrates taught that Jesus surpassed he says that Christians gave to certain others
other men in justice and integrity (awcppoavvr) of them the opprobrious name d\-07?s Kavarripia.
Kai dperfi Kal (ili^ diKaioavvris, Epiphanius), and Origen, however, supposes that I. Tim. iv. 2
no doubt our Lord's example might have been is here referred to.
cited only in reference to freedom from Jewish Mention has already been made of the culti-
ceremonial obligations yet the version of Ire-
;
vation of magic by the Carpocratians, and
naeus seems more trustworthy, which does not their pretension to equal the miraculous
suggest that the superiority of Jesus consisted powers of our Lord. Hippolytus, in the
in anything but the clearer apprehension of fourth book of the Refutation, gives us several
eternal truths which His intellect retained. specimens of wonders exhibited by magicians,
Carpocrates claimed to be in possession of the not very unlike feats performed by profes-
true teaching of Christ spoken secretly by Him sional conjurors to-day. It was easy for Ire-
to His apostles, and.communicated by them in naeus to shew (ii. 32) how very unlike these
tradition to the worthy and faithful and the transient wonders were to be permanent
;

apostolic doctrine that men are to be saved by miracles of healing effected by our Lord, and
faith and love was used by him to justify an which, as he claimed, continued in the church.
antinomian view of the complete indifference of According to Neander, the Carpocratian
works. Epiphanes, the son of Carpocrates by system sees in the world's history one struggle
a Cephallenian woman, maintained a licentious between the principles of unity and of multi-
theory of communism in all things, women plicity. From one eternal Monad all existence
included. The Carpocratians and the Cainites has flowed, and to this it strives to return.
have often been coupled together as the two But the finite spirits who rule over several
most immoral of the Gnostic sects, and in portions of the world counteract this universal
practical effects their doctrines may not have striving after unity. From them the different
been very different ;but the Carpocratian popular religions, and in particular the Jewish,
theory of the indifference of human actions fell have proceeded. Perfection is attained by
short of the inversion of good and evil which those souls who, led on by reminiscences of
is ascribed to the Cainites. Whereas the latter their former condition, soar above all limita-
represented the God of the Jews and Maker of tion and diversity to the contemplation of the
the world as an evil Being who ought to be higher unity. They despise the restrictions
resisted, the former only spoke of the makers imposed by the mundane spirits they regard ;

of the world as inferior beings whose restric- externals as of no importance, and faith and
tions it is true enlightenment to despise and love as the only essentials meaning by faith,
; ;

the arguments of Epiphanes, derived from the mystical brooding of the mind absorbed in the
equality that reigns in nature, assume that the original unity. In this way they escape the
creation is so far conformed to the will of God dominion of the finite mundane spirits their ;

that from the laws which pervade it we may souls are freed from imprisonment in matter,
infer what is pleasing to the supreme power. and they obtain a state of perfect repose (cor-
Whether immorality were directly taught by responding to the Buddhist Nirwana) when
Carpocrates himself or not, his followers be- they have completely ascended above the
came proverbial for deliberate licentiousness of world of appearance.
life. The Christians thought it likely that the With respect to the Carpocratians, the pri-
stories current among the heathen of scenes of mary authorities are Irenaeus (i. 25, ii. 31-34),
shameless debauchery in the Christian love- Clem. Alex. {Strom, iii. 2 Tertullian {de
) ;

feasts had a real foundation in what took place Anima, 23, 35), who appears to have drawn his
among the Carpocratians. Philaster, who, information from Irenaeus Philaster (35) and
;

apparently through oversight, enumerates the Pseudo-TertuUian (9), who represent the ear-
Carpocratians twice, the second time (57) lier treatise of Hippolytus Epiphanius (27),
;

giving them the alternative names of Floriani who weaves together the accounts of Hippoly-
and Milites, directly asserts this. His pre- tus and of Irenaeus and Hippolytus, who in
;

decessors had suggested it as probable (Clem. his later treatise (vii. 20) merely copies Ire-
Alex. Strom, iii. 2 ; cf. Justin Martyr, Apol. naeus, with some omissions, thereby suggesting
26). Irenaeus counts Carpocratian doctrines that he was not acquainted with the work of
and practices as means employed by Satan Irenaeus when he wrote the earlier treatise.
to discredit the Christian name among the He certainly had at that time other sources of
heathen. (See also Eus. H. E. iv. 7.) information, for he mentions three or four
A more trifling heathen belief about the points not found in Irenaeus e.g. he empha-
Christians generally seems to have been true sizes the Carpocratian doctrine of the unity of
of the Carpocratians, viz. that thev knew the first principle, tells of emanations from
each other by secret bodily marks (notaculo that principle of angels and powers, gives a
corporis, Minucius Felix, cc. 9, 31) for the
; different version of the excellence of Jesus, and
Carpocratians marked their disciples by says that Carpocrates denied the resurrection
cauterizing them in the back of the lobe of the of the body. It is not impossible that Justin's
right ear. It appears from Heracleon (Clem. work on heresies may have furnished some
Alex. p. 995, Eclog. ex Script. Proph. xxv.) that materials for Irenaeus. In any case Irenaeus
this was a baptismal ceremony, intended to probably added much of his own, for the pains
represent the " baptism with fire," predicted he has taken with the confutation make it
of our Lord by the Baptist. This confirms the probable that in his time the sect was still
evidence as to the use of at least St. Matthew's active at Rome.
Gospel by the Carpocratians furnished by We cannot assign an exact date to Carpo-
Epiphanius {Haer. xxx. p. 138) and by the crates ;but there are affinities between his
CASSIANUS JULIUS CASSIANUS 149

system and those of Saturninus and Basilides, Encratite argument founded on this text, viz.
which suggest one a little later than Basilides, that he who is united to a woman soweth to the
from wliom he may have derived his know- flesh, and therefore shall of the flesh reap
ledge of Christianity. Eusebius is probably corruption. This argument is introduced with
right in placing him in the reign of Hadrian words which, according to the common read-
{d. A.D. 138). It suffices merely to mention the ing, run, " Tatianus qui putativam Christi
invention of the writer known as Praedestin- carnem introducens, omnem conjunctionera
atus (i. 7) that the Carpocratians were con- masculi ad foeminam immundam arbitratur,
demned in Cyprus by the apostle Barnabas. tali adversum nos sub occasione praesentis
Matter, in his history of Gnosticism, gives an testimonii usus est argumento." There is
account of certain supposed Carpocratian in- little doubt that we are to read instead of
scriptions, since found to be spurious (Giese- Tatianus, Cassianus. The Benedictine editor
ler's Ecc. Hist. c. ii. § 45, note 16). [g.s.] who retains the old reading notes that Cas-
Cassianus (2) Julius, a heretical teacher who sianus is the reading of two of the oldest
lived towards the end of the 2nd cent., chiefly MSS., while Vallarsi says that Cassianus was
known to us by references to his writings made the reading of every MS. he had seen.
on two occasions by Clemens Alexandrinus. In The Docetism of Cassian was closely con-
the first passage {Strom, i. 21, copied by Euse- nected with his Encratism, for it was an
bius, Praep. Ev. x. 12) Clement engages in a obvious answer of the orthodox to his doctrine
chronological inquiry to shew the greatly on Continence, that if the birth of children were
superior antiquity of Moses to the founders of essentially evil, then our Lord's own birth was
Grecian philosophy, and he acknowledges him- evil, and His mother an object of blame. This
self indebted to the previous investigations was met by a denial of the reality of our Lord's
made by Tatian in his work addressed to the body. Cassian also taught tbat man had not
Greeks, and by Cassian (spelt Casianus in the been originally created with a body like ours,
MS. of Clement, but not in those of Eusebius) but that these fleshly bodies were the " coats
in the first book of his Exegetica. Vallarsi (ii. of skin " in which the Lord clothed our first
865) alters without comment the Cassianus of parents after the Fall. This notion, probably
previous editors into Casianus, in Jerome's derived from Valentinus (Iren. I. v. p. 27), had
Catalogue 33, a place where Jerome is not us- considerable currency. References for it will
ing Clement directly, but is copying the notice be found in Huet's Origeniana, ii. Qu. 12, viii.,
in Eusebius (H. E. vi. 13). Jerome adds that and Beausobre, Manicheisme, ii. 133).
he had not himself met the chronological work Theodoret {Haer. Fab. i. 8) enumerates
in question. In the second passage {Strom. among the followers of Valentinus one Cossian,
iii. 13, seq.) Cassian is also named in con- by whom, no doubt, Julius Cassianus is in-
nexion with Tatian. Clement is, in this tended for many greater inaccuracies in the
;

section, refuting the doctrines of those names are in the present text of Theodoret,
Gnostics who, in their view of the essential and Theodoret would have found authority in
evil of matter, condemned matrimony and the Clement for classing Cassian with Valentinus.
procreation of children ; and after consider- The coincidences between Tatian and Cas-
ing some arguments urged by Tatian, says sianus seem too close to be accidental, but we
that similar ones had been used by Julius have not data to determine their relative
Cassianus whom he describes as the origi- priority. If Cassian were really the founder of
nator of Docetism (6 ttJs 5oK-^(r€wj i^dpx^v), the sect called Docetae, he must have been
a statement which must be received with some some time antecedent to Serapion (Eus. H. E.
modification. [Docetae.] He quotes some vi. His country may have been Egypt
12).
passages from a treatise by Cassian on Con- (cf.Harnack, Gesch. der Alt. Chr. Lit. pp. 201-
tinence {irepl eyKpareias. ff nepi evvovxias), in 204). [Docetae Encratites].
; [g.s.]
which he wholly condemned sexual inter- Cassianus (6), bp. of Autun. The date we
course, and referred its origin to instigations assign him will vary according as we attach
of our first parents by the serpent, alleging in more weight to the ancient Life of him, which
proof II. Cor. xi. 3. Cassian quoted Is. Ivi. 3, professes to be based on a contemporary record
Matt. xix. 12, and probably several other (.4c<aSS. Aug. 5, vol. ii. p. 64), as Ruinart prefers
passages which are discussed by Clement to do, or to a casual statement by Gregory of
without express mention that they had been Tours, who was shewn his tomb {Glor. Conf. 74,
used by Cassian. Cassian also uses certain 75), as do Tillemont and the Bollandists. The
alleged sayings of our Lord, cited likewise in Life tells us that he was born of noble parents
the so-called second epistle of the Roman in Alexandria, and brought up by a bp. Zonis ;

Clement to the Corinthians, cap. xii., as well that he made his house a Christian hospital in
as in the Excerpta Theodoti, Ixvii. p. 985. the time of JuUan, liberated his slaves, and
Lightfoot notices {Clement, I.e.) that Cassian, built a church to St. Lawrence at Orta in
by the omission of a clause, makes the Encra- Egypt, at which place he was made bishop
tite aspect of the passage much stronger than it against his will in the time of Jovian, a.d. 363.
appears in the citation of the Pseudo-Clement. The tomb of Cassian was famous. A stain
Cleniens Alexandrinus makes no complaint of in the form of a cross appeared on it, which is
unfairness in the quotation but while he re-
;
said to have prompted Germanus to hold a con-
marks that the sayings in question are not found versation with the saint in his tomb. He
in our four Gospels, but only in the Gospel ac- asked him how he did, and the saint answered
cording to the Egyptians, he gives adifferent ex- that he was at rest. This is told in his Life,
planation far less natural than that of Cassian. and may explain the great eagerness to obtain
Another specimen of Cassian's arguments in dust scraped from the stones of his tomb,
this treatise is preserved in Jerome's Commen- which was almost bored through in con-
tary on Gal. vi. 8c Jerome there answers an sequence, as testified by Gregory. [e.b.b.]
150 CASSIANUS JOHANNES CASSIANUS JOHANNES
Cassianus (11) Johannes has been called the dation. As Cassian is addressed in the Epis-
founder of Western monachism and of the semi- tola Castoris as " abbas," " dominus," and
Pelagian school. More exactly, he was the first " pater," it is argued, but not with certainty,
to transplant the rules of the Eastern monks that he presided over his new monastery.
into Europe, and the most eminent of the Here he devoted himself to literary labours for
writers who steered a course between Pelagian- many years, and died at a very great age,
ism and the tenets of St. Augustine. Like St. probably between a.d. 440 and 450.
Chrysostom, St. John Damascene, and others, The de Institutis Rcnuntiantiiim, in twelve
he is usually designated by his agnomen. His books, was written c. 420 at the request of
birth is dated between a.d. 350 and 360 his ; Castor, bp- of Apta Julia, in Gallia Narbo-
birthplace is not known. Gennadius calls him nensis (Praef. Inst.). Books i.-iv. treat of the
" Scytha " (Fabric. Bihlioth. Eccles. s.v.) but ; monastic rule the others of its especial
;

this may be merely a corruption from Scetis or hindrances. The former were abridged by Eu-
Scyathis, where Cassian resided for some time cherius Lugdunensis. The Collationes Patrum
among the monks of Nitria. His parents, of in Scithico Eremo Commorantium, in which
whose piety he speaks gratefully {Coll. xxiv. i), Cassian records his Egyptian experiences, were
sent him to be educated in a monastery at evidently intended to complete his previous
Bethlehem and there he would have frequent
;
work his purpose being to describe in the de
;

intercourse with pilgrims from the West. This Institutis the regulations and observances of
cannot have been, as some have thought, the monachism in the Collationes its interior
;

monastery of St. Jerome, for that was not then scope and spirit in the former he writes of
:

in existence, nor does Cassian ever refer to monks, in the latter of hermits. The Colla-
Jerome Here Cassian became
as his teacher. tiones were commenced for Castor, but after
intimate with Germanus, the future companion his death Collat. i.-x. were inscribed to Leon-
of his travels. The fame of the Egyptian tius, a kinsman of Castor, and Helladius,
monks and hermits reached Cassian and his bishop in that district xi.-xvii. to Honoratus,
;

friend in their cells. About a.d. 390 they abbat of Lerins, and Eucherius, bp. of Lug-
started, with leave of absence for seven years, dunum (Lyons) xviii.-xxiv. to the monks and
;

to study by personal observation the more anchorets of the Stoechades (Hyeres). The
austere rules of the " renuntiantes," as they Collationes have been well called a " speculum
were called, in the Thebaid. At the end of monasticum " St. Benedict ordered them to
:

seven years they revisited Bethlehem and ; be read daily they were highly approved also
;

thence returned very soon to the Egyptian by the founders of the Dominicans, Carthu-
deserts (Coll. xvii. 31). Thus Cassian collected sians, and Jesuits. But the orthodoxy of
the materials for his future writings. Besides the Collationes, especially of iii. and xiii., on
other voluntary hardships, he speaks of the the subject of Grace and Freewill, was
monks having to fetch water on their shoulders impugned by St. Augustine and Prosper of
a distance of three or four miles iColl. xxiv. 10). Aquitania. [Pelagianism.] An attempt was
Evidently in his estimation, as in that of his made by Cassiodorus and others to expur-
contemporaries generally', the vocation of a gate them. Cassian's last work, de Incar-
solitary is hoher than even that of a coenobite. natione Christi (cf. i. 3, v. 2;, was directed
About A.D. 403 we find Cassian and Ger- against the Nestorian heresy, c. 429, at the
manus at Constantinople, perhaps attracted by suggestion of Leo then archdeacon and after-
the reputation of Chr\sostom. By him Cas- wards pope. Probably Cassian was selected
sian was ordained deacon, or, as some think, for this controversy as a disciple of Chrys-
appointed archdeacon and in; his treatise de ostom, the illustrious predecessor of Nestorius
Incarnatione (vii. 31) he speaks of Chrysostom in the see of Constantinople [Inc. vii. 31).
with affectionate reverence. Cassian and his The treatises de Spirituali Medicind Monachi,
friend were entrusted with the care of the cathe- Theologica Confessio, and de Conflictu Virtutum
dral treasures and, after the expulsion of
; ac Vitiorum are generally pronounced spurious.
Chrysostom, the)' were sent by his adherents Cassian is remarkable as a link between
on an embassy to Rome c. a.d. 405 to solicit Eastern and Western Christendom, and as com-
the intervention of Innocent I. No further bining in himself the active and the contem-
mention is made of Germanus nor is much ; plative life. It is difficult to overestimate his
known of Cassian during the next ten years. influence indirectly on the great monastic
Probably he remained at Rome after Chrys- system of mediaeval Europe. His writings
ostom died, A.D. 407, until the approach of have always been in esteem with monastic re-
the Goths under Alaric, and thus acquired a formers ; especially at the revival of learning
personal interest in the Pelagian controversy. in the 15th cent. Even his adversary Prosper
After quitting Rome it has been inferred calls him " insignis ac facundus." Cassian
from a casual expression in the de Institulis shews a thorough knowledge of the Holy
(iii. that Cassian visited the monks of Meso-
i) Scriptures ;often with a good deal of quaint-
potamia some say that he returned for a
; ness in his application of it. His style, if not
time to Egypt or Palestine and by some he
; so rich in poetic eloquence as that of his great
is identified with Cassianus Presbyter. Prob- opponent, is clear and forcible and he is
;

ably Cassian betook himself from Rome to practical rather than profound. His good
Massilia (Marseilles). In this neighbourhood sense manifests itself in his preface to the
he founded two monasteries (one afterwards Instituta, where he announces his intention to
known as that of St Victor) for men and avoid legendary wonders and to regard his
women respectively. Tillemont says that the subject on its practical side. He insists con-
rule was taken from the fourth book of the de tinually on the paramount importance of the
Lustitutia and that many monasteries in that intention, disclaiming the idea of what is
;

part of Gaul owed their existence to this foun- called the " opus operatum " —
for instance, on
;

CASSIODORUS MAGNUS AURELIUS CASSIODORUS MAGNUS AURELIUS 151


almsgiving (Inst. vii. 21), fasting (Coll. i. 7), Theodoric employed the eloquent pen of
self,
and prayer (ix. 3) and he is incessant in
; his minister in all public communications, and
denouncing the especial sins of cloister-life, spent his leisure time in acquiring from him
as pride, ambition, vainglory. The life of a erudition of various kinds (Var. ix. 24). It
monk, as he portrays it, is no formal and would seem to have been the ambition of
mechanical routine but a daily and hourly
; Cassiodorus, whose genius for diplomacy was
act of self-renunciation (xxiv. 2). On the consummate, to bring about a fusion between
other hand, he is by no means free from ex- the Arian conquerors and the conquered
aggerated reverence for mere asceticism ; and, Catholic population of Italy, to establish
while encouraging the highest aspirations after friendly relations with the Eastern empire, and
holiness, allows too much scope to a selfish possibly to create at Rome a peaceful centre to
desire of reward. As a casuist he is for the which the several barbaric kingdoms which
most part sensible and judicious, e.g., in dis- had established themselves in Gaul, Spain, and
criminating between voluntary and involun- Africa might be attracted. The progress of
tary thoughts (i. 17). But he presses obedience Theodoric to the capital, where the schism
so far as to make it unreasonable and fanatical between pope Symmachus and his rival,
(Inst. iv. 27, etc.), and under certain circum- Laurentius, was then raging, a.d. 500, was
stances he sanctions deceit (Coll. xvii.). probably planned by him in view of this result
On the subject of Predestination Cassian, (Var. xii. 18, 19 ;cf. Gibbon, Decl. and Fall,
without assenting to Pelagius, protested c. 39) but the temper of Theodoric's declin-
;

against what he considered the fatalistic ten- ing years must have disappointed the hopes of
dency of St. Augustine. In the Collationes Cassiodorus, and in 524 he resolved to divest
he merely professes to quote the words of the himself of his honours, and to seek shelter in
Egyptian " fathers " and in the de Incar-
; his Calabrian retreat from the storm which
natione he distinctly attacks Pelagianism as proved fatal to his co-senators, Boethius and
closely allied with the heresy of Nestorius Symmachus. After the death of Theodoric,
(i. 3, vi. 14). Still, it is certain from the tenor 525, Cassiodorus again became conspicuous as
of his writings that Cassian felt a very strong the trusted adviser of his daughter Amalasun-
repugnance to any theorv which seemed to tha, widow of Eutaric, who acted as regent for
him to involve an arbitrary limitation of the her son Athalaric (Var. ix. 25). By his influ-
possibility of being saved. It has been well ence the Goths were kept in subjection to the
said that St. Augustine regards man in his new rule, notwithstanding the Roman pro-
natural state as dead, Pelagius as sound and clivities of Amalasuntha as displayed in the
well, Cassian as sick. [Pelagianism.] education of the young prince. The threat-
The best critical ed. of Cassian's works is ened danger of an invasion by Justinian was
in the Corp. Scr. Eccl. Lat. xiii. xvii., ed. by likewise averted by the ready aid of his purse
Petschenig. In Schaff and Wace's Post- and pen (Procop. B. G. i. 3). Upon the en-
Nicene Library there is a translation of most forced acceptance by Amalasuntha of Theo-
of them, with valuable prolegomena and notes datus as co-regent, Cassiodorus again submit-
by Dr. Gibson, Bp. of Gloucester, [i.g.s.) ted to circumstances (Var. x. 6, 7), and wrote
Cassiodorus (or rather, Cassiodorius) Mag- letters soliciting the goodwill of the senate
nus Aurelius, senator, and chief minister to and the emperor (x. i, 2, 3). He was then
the Ostrogothic princes of Italy, born at praetorian prefect and continued to serve
Scylacium (Squillace) in Bruttium, 469-470, of under Theodatus after the untimely death of
a noble, wealthy, and patriotic family. Cas- Athalaric and the treacherous murder of
siodorus was brought up under circumstances Amalasuntha. One is tempted to suspect the
highly favourable to his education, which nobleness of a character which, no matter how
included the study of grammar, rhetoric, Infamous the ruler, could accommodate itself
dialectic, music, arithmetic, geometry, astro- with such singular tact to every change of
nomy, mechanics, anatomy, Greek, and the government ; but Cassiodorus was no mere
sacred Scriptures. His learning and accom- time-server. His writings shew him to have
plishments early attracted the notice of been animated by a truly patriotic spirit and
;

Odoacer, the first barbarian ruler of Italy, by if he adapted himself skilfully to the varying
whom he was made " comes privatarum," and humours of the court, it was that he might be
subsequently " comes sacrarum largitionum " able to alleviate the misfortimes of his con-
(Var. i. 4). After the final defeat of Odoacer quered countrymen.
by Theodoric at Ravenna, 493, Cassiodorus Upon the triumph of Belisarius and the
retired to his patrimonial estate in Bruttium, downfall of the Ostrogoths, Cassiodorus, now
and secured the wavering allegiance of the 70 years of age, withdrew to his native
provincials to the cause of the new ruler ;for province and founded the monastery of
this service he was appointed by Theodoric to Viviers at the foot of Mount Moscius, which
the official government of Lucania and Brut- he describes (xii. 15). For 50 years he
tiuni. Happy in the art of ruling to the satis- had laboured to preserve authority from its
faction of the governed without neglecting the own excesses, to soften the manners of the
interests of his master, he was summoned, up- Goths and uphold the rights of the Romans
on the conclusion of his prefecture, to Raven- but, weary of the superhuman task, turned to
na, and advanced successively to the dignities the cloister for repose and freedom. His
of secretary, quaestor, master of the offices, activity, however, was not satisfied with the
praetorian prefect, patrician, and consul. ordinary occupations of monastic life. Hence
Meanwhile he enjoyed an intimacy with the while the summit of the mountain was set
prmce, which, reflected as it is in his Varieties, apart for the hermits of the community (mon-
has given to that work much of the character asterium castellense), there sprang up at its
and value of a state journal. Illiterate him- base, beneath his own immediate auspices, a
152 CATHARINE CATHARINE
society of coenobites, devoted to the pursuit virgin and martyr of Alexandria. Tillemont
of learning and science {monasterium vivari- writes, in the 17th cent., that it would be
ense). He endowed the monastery with his hard to find a saint more generally reverenced,
extensive Roman library (Div. Lit. c. 8). The or one of whom so little was known on credible
monks were incited by his example to the study authority, and adds that no single fact about
of classical and sacred literature, and trained her is certain {Mem. eccl. vii. pp. 447, 761 ;
in the careful transcription of manuscripts, in cf. Papebrocius, as quoted in Baron. Ann.

the purchase of which large sums were con- Eccl. ed. Theiner, iii. ad ann. 307).
tinually disbursed. Bookbinding, gardening, The earliest mention of St. Catharine in the
and medicine were among the pursuits of the Eastern church (v. Menology of Basil) under
less intellectual members of the fraternity the name of HlKadapiva (possibly a corruption
(ib. 28, 30, 31). Such time as he himself of Tj KaOaplvrj, dim. of Ka6ap6s, pure), is about
could spare from the composition of sacred the end of 9th cent. (Tillem. u.s. ; Baillet, Vies
or scientific treatises he employed in con- des Saints, tom. viii. Nov. 25) ; in 13th cent,
structing self-acting lamps, sundials, and she appears in the Latin Martyrologies
water-clocks for the use of the monastery. (Baillet, ib.), the crusaders having brought
Nor was the influence of his example confined her fame to Europe among other marvels
to his own age, institution, or country ;the from the East. Some time in the 8th or 9th
multiplication of manuscripts became gradu- cent, the monks on Mount Sinai disinterred
ally as much a recognized employment of the body, as they were eager to believe, of one
monastic life as prayer or fasting and for this
; of those Christian martyrs whose memory they
the statue of Cassiodorus deserves an honour- cherished. Eusebius relates how a lady of
able niche in every library. The date of his — —
Alexandria' he omits her name was one of
death is uncertain. He composed his treatise the victims of Maximinus early in 4th cent.
on orthography in his 93rd year {de Orthogr. {H. E. xiii. 14). It was easy to identify the
praef.). corpse as that of the anonymous sufferer, to
Of his extant writings, the twelve Books of invent a name for it, and to bridge over the
Varieties, consisting principally of letters, distance between Alexandria and Mount Sinai.
edicts, and rescripts, are the only work of real Simeon Metaphrastes, a legendist of Constan-
importance ; apart, however, from the study tinople in loth cent., gives a long account of
of these pages, it is hardly possible to obtain a St. Catharine's martyrdom, with horrible de-
true knowledge of the Italy of the 6th cent. tails of her tortures, an exact report of her
The very style of the writer, possessing, as it dispute in public with the philosophers of the
does, a certain elegance, yet continually de- city and of the learned oration by which she
viating from pure idiom and good taste, is converted them and the empress Faustina
singularly characteristic of the age which wit- and many of the court, and how her corpse
nessed the last flicker of Roman civilization was transported to Mount Sinai by angels
under the Ostrogothic rule. It is as though (Martin, Vies des Saints, tom. iii. pp. 1841,
the pen of Cicero had been dipped in barbaric seq.). But the whole story is plainly unhis-
ink. The general result is artificial and bi- torical, even apart from the significant fact
zarre ; but though his meaning is frequently that there is no external testimony to its
obscured by his rhetoric, his manner is not as authenticity. For in Eusebius the emperor's
unpleasing as is often asserted. It will be exasperation is provoked, not, as in the
sufficient to enumerate here the other writings legend, by a refusal to abjure Christianity and
of Cassiodorus, a more detailed account of to sacrifice to his gods, but by a refusal to
which is given in Smith's D. of G. and R. Biogr. gratify his guilty passion ; and the punish-
(2) Historiae Ecclesiasticae Tripartitae, libri ment inflicted is merely exile, not torture and
xii., being an epitome of the ecclesiastical his- death. Even Baronius, who suggests emend-
tories of Sozomen, Socrates, and Theodoretus, ations to make the legend more probable,
as digested and translated by Epiphanius hesitates to accept it as historical, while his
Scholasticus. {3) Chronicon, chiefly derived commentator, with Tillemont and Baillet,
from Eusebius, Jerome, and Prosper. (4) Com- abandons altogether the hopeless attempt to
putus Paschalis. (5) Exposttio in Psalmos, reconcile Simeon Metaphrastes with Eusebius.
principally borrowed from St. Augustine. (6) The martyrdom of St. Catharine is commem-
Expositio in Cantica Caniicorum, of doubtful orated in the Latin and Greek calendars on
authenticity. (7) De Institutione Divinarum Nov. 25 ; the discovery (" invention ") of her
Literarum, an interesting work as illustrating body on Mount Sinai on May 13 in the French
the enlightened spirit which animated the Mar'tyrology (Baillet, M.S.). In England her
monastic life of Viviers. (8) Complexiones in festival was promoted from the 2nd class (on
Eptstolas Apostolorum, in Acta, et in Apocalyp- which field labour, though no other servile
sin, first brought to light by the Marquis Scipio work, was permitted) to the ist class of holy-
Maffei at Florence, in 1721. (9) De Artihus ac days in 13th cent. {Cone. Oxon. a.d. 1222, c. 8;

Disciplinis Liberalium Literarum. (10) De Cone. Vigorn. a.d. 1240, c. 54), and retained
Oratione et de Octo Partihiis Orationis, of doubt- as a black-letter day at the Reformation. It
ful authenticity. (11) De Orihographia. (12) was left untouched in Germany at the re-
De Anima. Of the lost writings of Cassio- trenchment of holidays in a.d. 1540- In
dorus the most important appears to have been France it was gradually abolished as a holiday,
de Rebus Gestis Gothorum, libri xii., of which although the office was retained in 17th cent.
we have the abridgment of Jornandes. (Baillet, u.s.). In Europe during the middle
The best ed., together with an appendix con- ages her name was held in great reverence.
taining the commentaries discovered by Maffei, Louis IX. of France erected in Paris a costly
is in Migne's Pair. vols. Ixix. Ixx. [e.m.y.] church in her name ; and the famous Maid of
Catharine (Catharina, Catherine, etc.), St., Orleans claimed her special favour and tute-
CAULACAU CELSUS 153

lage (Martia, u.s.). The head of St. Catharine " burning with the love of it " (i. 8) he is;

was alleged to be preserved in her church in intolerant of the association of it with any-
the Piazza of St. Peter's at Rome. She was thing that is mortal or perishable. He was
regarded generally as the patron saint of not free from superstition he believed in
;

schools, probably from the tradition of her magic, and declared that serpents and eagles
learned controversy with the philosophers at were more skilled in it than men (iv. 86).
Alexandria. A semi-monastic order, the Baur says that " in acuteness, in dialectical
Knights of Mount Sinai or of Jerusalem, in- aptitude, in many-sided cultivation, at once
stituted in Europe A.n. 1063 in honour of St. philosophic and general, Celsus stands behind
Catharine, under the rule of St. Basil, bound no opponent of Christianity." Admitting that
themselves by vows to chastity, though not this panegyric is not groundless, we must add,
to celibacy (castiUi conjugale), to entertain that in vital insight Celsus was deficient. As
pilgrims, and in rotation, each for two years, an opponent of Christianity, the chief charac-
to guard the holy relics. Their dress was a teristic of Celsus is a strong, narrow, intolerant
white tunic, and embroidered on it a broken common sense. To him Christianity is an
wheel, armed with spikes, in memory of the " exitiabilis superstitio " he gives credence to
;

jagged wheel on which, according to the every story against it on which he can lay his
legend, the saint was racked, and which was hands he dwells with coarse jocularity on the
;

miraculously shattered by divine interposition. Jewish tradition of Panthera and the Virgin
The order became extinct after the fall of Mary
sqq.)
(i. he unearths a certain
28, ;

Constantinople ; but in the 17th cent, the Diagramma, a


figure symbolizing the world,
Basilian monks at Paris gave the badge of of a circle called Leviathan en-
and consisting
the order to any candidates who would take the closing ten other circles, apparently used in the
vow of chastity and of obedience to the rule of rites of some sect more or less approximating
St. Basil (Moroni, Dizion. Eccles. Reference to to the Christians (vi. 22). He has no idea of
Giustiniani, Hist. Chronol. d. Ordini Equestri, regarding Christianity from the inside, and of
p. 121; Bonami, Catalogo d. Ord. Equest. p. 21). inquiring into the reason of its influence he ;

See Tillem. Mem. eccl. ;Baronius (Caesar), uses jest for argument, and interprets every-
Annates Ecclesiastici (Barri Duels, 1864, 4to, thing in a bad sense. Treating of the flight
tom. '\\i.)\'Bo\h\ndns] oa.m\Q's.,Les A desdes saints, of Jesus into Egypt, and afterwards (as he
etc. (Lyons, Besan^on, 1865, 8vo, Nov. 25); alleges) before the betrayal, he asks, " Had
Life of St. Catharine, with its Latin original God need to fly from His enemies ? Does fear
"
from the Cotton MSS., ed. with Intro., etc., by belong to God ?
E. Einenkel (Lond. 1884); Life and Martyrdom From such instances it is evident that Cel-
of St. Cath. of Alex. (Roxburghe Club, No. 90, sus wholly misapprehended the force of the
Lond. 1884). [I.G.S.] doctrine that he was attacking. There are
Caulacau. [Basilides.] cases, indeed, in which he shews himself more
Celsus (1). Of the personal history of this, acute. He challenges the evidence of Chris-
the first great polemical adversary of Chris- tianity, and asks, "Who
saw the dove lighting
tianitv, we know nothing with certainty ; and on the head of Jesus after His baptism ? " As
even Origen, from whom the whole of our to the Resurrection, he makes the remark which
knowledge of Celsus is derived, had received has been copied by Renan and others, that it
the work of Celsus, entitled d\-r]dr]s \6yos, or was Mary Magdalene, " a fanatical woman,"
the True Discourse, without any hint of the who was the first witness of the resurrection,
history or date of its author. according to all the accounts (ii. 55) ; and
But questions far more interesting than remarks on the disbelief invariably given to
!

personal ones are raised by his attack on such accounts as those of the resurrection of
Christianity, of which enough has been pre- Zamolxis, Pythagoras, Orpheus, Protesilaus,
|

served by Origen in his contra Celsum to con- Hercules, and Theseus. But the most remark-
vey to us a very tolerable idea of its nature. able portions of his attack are those directed
We must be on our guard at once against dis- against the general character of Christianity.
[

paraging it too much, and against thinking He dwells on the numerous sects of Christians,
j

too highly of its ability. Origen, indeed, who all of whom


said, " Crede, si salvus fieri velis,"
to all appearance is a very fair antagonist, and asks how one is to judge between so many?
1

speaks of it with contempt. But Celsus was not Origen does not deny the fact, but maintains
I

a mere polemical assailant ; he was a philo- that it is a proof of the importance of that on
j

sopher on his own account, and held in certain which they debated, and further that they all
I

respects by no means unenlightened opinions. set forth Jesus alone as the means of salvation
1

He had strong faith in reason. " What evil (vi. 11). Celsus accuses the Christians of law-
I

is it," he asks, " to be learned and to have lessness, and of keeping wholly to themselves,
i

cultivated the intellect with the best pursuits, and not caring for those outside. He com-
to be and to appear wise ? What obstacle are plains vehemently of them as discouraging
these things to the knowledge of God ? Do learning, wisdom, and thought as rejecting ;

not they rather lead and assist to the attain- the authority of reason as being the patrons ;

ment of truth ? " Nor had that similarity of sinners, whereas to the heathen mysteries
between the human and the animal frame, only " the holy and virtuous " were invited.
which the natural science of our own day in- He makes a great point of the opposition be-
sists upon, escaped his notice. Hence he tween the morality of the Old and New Testa-
deduces that ants " converse, have reason, ments, in respect of the earthly success which
notions of general truths, speech," etc. (iv. 84), is the crowning happiness of the former, and
and even that they have knowledge of God. so strongly reprobated by the latter. Finally,
It would be hard, again, to cavil at his ideas he maintains that no revelation of the Supreme
of the Divine Nature ; he speaks of men Being can be made ; but that, if it could be
154 CERDO CERINTHUS
made, it must be of universal and compelling public confession, and so going on, now teach-
efi&cacy ; that, however, all that is possible is ing his doctrine in secret, now again making
revelation by an angel or demon, and even that public confession, now convicted in respect of
he denies to Judaism or Christianity. his evil teaching, and removed, or, as some
The form of Celsus's work, the a\r]6T}s \6yos, think, voluntarily withdrawing himself, from
is well known. He begins with a dialogue be- the communion of the brethren (a<pL<TTanevo$
tween a Jew and a Christian, in which the Jew T^s tQv aSe\<pQiv crvvo^'ias). Epiphanius seems
sets forth his objections to Christianity. But inaccurate in giving a heading to a sect of
he had not any partiality for Judaism. He Cerdonians. Preceding writers speak only of
treats Moses and the Jewish Scriptures with a Cerdo, not of Cerdonians and probably his
;

contempt which amusingly contrasts with followers were early merged in the school of
the uncritical reverence which he pays to the Marcion, who is said to have joined himself to
Galactophagi of Homer, the Druids, and the Cerdo soon after his arrival in Rome.
Getae, whom he terms " wise and ancient Apparently Cerdo left no writings, nor is
nations " (i. i6) ; and with which he accepts there evidence that those who report his
the stories of Linus and Musaeus, though after- doctrine had any knowledge of it independent
wards he rejects those of Perseus and Amphion of the form it took in the teaching of his
(i. 64). In one of the most unpleasing pas- Marcionite successors. Consequently we can-
sages of his work, he compares Jews and not now determine with certainty how much
Christians to a set of worms or frogs squab- of the teaching of Marcion had been antici-
bling in the mud, and saying, " God is, and we pated by Cerdo, or what points of disagree-
are next to Him, and it is for our sake that the ment there were between the teaching of the
whole world is made and God will come and two. Hippolytus, in his Refutation (x. 19),
;

take us up to heaven, except those who are makes no attempt to discriminate between
bad, whom He will burn with lire." their doctrines. TertuUian, in his work
The work of Origen against him is, as a against Marcion, mentions Cerdo four times,
whole, of much controversial merit and philo- but only as Marcion's predecessor. Irenaeus
sophical breadth. Origen, indeed, like Celsus, says that Cerdo taught that the God preached
is not free from the superstitions of his time by the law and the prophets was not the
;

thus he defends the star whose appearance is Father of our Lord for that the former was
;

told in the second chapter of St. Matthew by a known, the latter unknown the former was
;

reference to comets, which, he remarks, por- just, the latter good. Pseudo-Tertullian's
tend future events, such as wars and pestil- account (Haer. 16) may be regarded as repre-
ences. But, on the whole, there are few works senting that in the earlier treatise of Hippoly-
of the ancient Fathers which can be read with tus, which was also used by Philaster and
more pleasure and profit. F. C. Baur has Epiphanius. Thus we learn that Cerdo intro-
written an elaborate critique on Celsus in his duced two first principles (apxo-i-) and two
work on Christendom and the Christian Church gods, the one good, the other evil, the latter
in the First Three Centuries (Tiibingen, 1853). the creator of the world. It is an important
But especially valuable is Prof. Theodor difference that to the good god is opposed in
Keim's monograph (Celsus's Wahres Wort. the account of Irenaeus a just one in that of ;

Ziirich, 1873). Dr. Keim gathers together, Hippolytus, an evil one. In the later work
and translates, the fragments of Celsus con- of Hippolytus already cited, Cerdo is said to
tained in Origen ; and adds disquisitions of have taught three principles of the universe,
much interest, both on Celsus himself and on dya66v, diKatov, vX-qv. Ps.-Tertullian goes on
two of his contemporaries, Lucian of Samosata to say that Cerdo rejected the law and the
and Minucius Felix. Both Baur and Keim prophets, and renounced the Creator, teaching
rate Celsus too highly but the general ten- that Christ was the son of the higher good
;

dency of Christian writers has naturally been deity, and that He came not in the substance
to underrate him. The date of Celsus's treat- of flesh but in appearance only, and had not
ise is fixed by Keim as a.d. 177, or 178. really died or really been born of a virgin and ;

(Cf. Renan, Marc-Aiircle; Pelagaud, Etude sur that Cerdo onlj' acknowledged a resurrection
Celse (Lyons, 1828) Aube, Histoire des perse- of the soul, denying that of the body. He
;

cutions (Paris, 1878) Lightfoot, Apost. Fath. adds, but without support from the other
;

n. i. pp. 513 ff-) [J.R.M.] authorities, that Cerdo received only the
Cerdo (l) {KipSwv), a Gnostic teacher of the Gospel of St. Luke, and that in a mutilated
first half of the 2nd cent., principally known form that he rejected some of Paul's epistles
;

as the predecessor of Marcion. Epiphanius and portions of others, and completely re-
(Haer. 41) and Philaster (Haer. 44) assert him jected the Acts and the Apocalypse. There
to have been a native of Syria, and Irenaeus is every appearance that Ps.-Tertullian here
(i. 27 and iii. 4) states that he came to Rome in transferred to Cerdo what in his authority was
the episcopate of Hyginus. This episcopate stated of Marcion. For a discussion of his
lasted four years, and Lipsius (Chronologie der other doctrines see Marcion. [g.s.]
romischen Bischo/e) places its termination a.d. Cerinthus, a traditional opponent of St.
139-14 1. Bearing in mind the investigations John. It will probably always remain an
of M. Waddington concerning the year of Poly- open question whether his fundamentally
carp's martyrdom, we prefer the earlier date, Ebionite sympathies inclined him to accept
if not a still earlier one, and would put Cerdo's Jewish rather than Gnostic additions. Modern
arrival at Rome as early as a.d. 133. scholarship has therefore preferred to view his
According to the account of Irenaeus, Cerdo doctrine as a fusing together and incorporating
had not the intention of founding a sect apart in a single system tenets collected from Jewish,
from the church. He describes him as more Oriental, and Christian sources but the
;

than once coming to the church and making nature of that doctrine is sufficiently clear, and
;

CERINTHUS CERINTHUS 156

its opposition to the instruction of St. John as conception is evidently that of an age when
decided as that of the Nicolaitanes. hereditary and instinctive reverence for the
Cerinthus was of Egyptian origin, and in law served as a check upon the system-
religion a Jew. He received his education in maker. Cerinthus is a long way from the
the J udaeo-Philonic school of Alexandria. On bolder and more hostile schools of later
leaving Egypt he visited Jerusalem, Caesarea, Gnosticism.
and Antioch. From Palestine he passed into The Christology is of an Ebionite cast and
Asia and there developed rrjs avrov dwuXelas of the same transition character. It must not
^apadpov (Epiph. xxviii. 2). Galatia, accord- be assumed that it is but a form of the common
ing to the same authority, was selected as his Gnostic dualism, the double-personality after-
headquarters, whence he circulated his errors. wards elaborated by Basilides and Valentinus.
On one of his journeys he arrived at Ephesus, Epiphanius, the chief source of information,
and met St. John in the public baths. The is to many a mere uncritical compiler, some-

Apostle, hearing who was there, fled from the times following Hippolytus, sometimes Ire-
place as if fi;)r life, crying to those about him :
naeus. Now it is Christ Who is born of Mary
" Let us flee, lest the bath fall in while Cerin- and Joseph (Epiph. xxviii. i), now it is Jesus
thus, the enemy of the truth, is there." Who is bom like other men, born of Josephand
The value of this and other such traditions Mary He differs from others only in being
;

is confessedly not great — that of the meeting


"
more righteous, more prudent, and more wise
not till after baptism, when Jesus has
;

with St. John in the bath is told of " Ebion it is

as well as of Cerinthus — ; but a stratum of reached manhood, that Christ, " that is to
say, the Holy Spirit in the form of a dove,"
fact probably underlies them, and they at
least indicate the feeling with which the early descends upon Jesus from above (dvudev iK
" Churchmen " regarded him. Epiphanius, Tov dvu) deou' awb rqs inrep tA 8\a avdevreiai,
by whom the majority are preserved, derived Iren.), revealing to Him and through Him to
the principal portion of his statements partly those after Him the " unknown Father." If,
from Irenaeus, and partly, as Lipsius has as Lipsius thinks (p. 119), Irenaeus has here
shewn with high probability, from the now been influenced by the later Gnostic systems,
lost earlierwork of Hippolytus on heresies. and has altered the original doctrine of Cerin-
His doctrines may be collected under the thus as given in Hippolytus, that doctrine
heads of his conception of the Creation, his would seem to be that he considered " Jesus "
Christology, and his Eschatology. His opin- and " Christ " titles given indifferently to that
ions upon two of these points, as preserved in One Personality Which was blessed by the
existing works, support the usual vaew, that descent of the Holy Spirit, the Power on high
Cerinthus rather than Simon Magus is to be (17 dvijoOev 5vva/j.is)- This Power enables Jesus
regarded as the predecessor of Judaeo-Chris- to perform miracles, but forsakes Him at His
tian Gnosticism. Passion, " flying heavenwards." So, again,
Unlike Simon Magus and Menander, Cerin- it is Jesus, according to one passage of Epiph-
thus did not claim a sacred and mystic power. anius, Who dies and rises again, the Christ
Caius the Presbyter can only assert against being spiritual and remaining impassible
him that he pretended to angelic revelations according to a second, it is Christ Who dies,
(Eus., Theod.). But his mind, like theirs, but is not yet risen, nor shall He rise till the
brooded over the co-existence of good and evil, general resurrection. That passage, how-
spirit and matter and his scheme seems
; ever, which allows that the human body of
intended to free the " unknown God " and Jesus had been raised from the dead separates
the Christ from the bare imputation of infec- its author completely from Gnostic successors.
tion through contact with nature and man. The Chiliastic eschatology of Cerinthus is
Trained as he was in the philosophy of Philo, very clearly stated byTheodoret, Caius, Diony-
the Gnosis of Cerinthus did not of necessity sius (Eus.), and Augustine, but not alluded to
compel him to start —
from opposition- in the by Irenaeus. His silence need perhaps cause
sense of malignity- of — evil to good, matter to no surprise Irenaeus was himself a Chiliast of
:

spirit. He recognized opposition in the sense the spiritual school, and in his notes upon
of difference between the one active perfect only careful to mention what
Cerinthus he is
principle of life —
God — and that lower imper- was peculiar
to his system. The conception
fect passive existence which was dependent of Cerinthus was highly coloured. In his
upon God but this fell far short of malignity. "dream" and "phantasy" the Lord shall
;

He therefore conceived the material world to have an earthly kingdom in which the elect are
have been formed not by " the First God," to enjoy pleasures, feasts, marriages, and
but by angelic Beings of an inferior grade of sacrifices. Its capital is Jerusalem and its
Emanation (Epiph.). More precisely still he duration 1000 years thereafter shall ensue
:

described the main agent as a certain Power the restoration of all things. Cerinthus de-
{!)6vaui.i) separate and distinct from the rived this notion from Jewish sources. His
" Principality " (17 vw^p to. 6\a avdfvreia, v. notions of eschatology are radically Jewish :

Suicer, Thes. s.v. avd.) and ignorant of rbv they may have originated, but do not contain,
virip iravra diov. He refused in the spirit of the Valentinian notion of a spiritual marriage
" between the souls of the elect and the Angels
a true Jew to consider the " God of the Jews
identical with that author of the material of the Pleroma.
world who was alleged by Gnostic teachers to Other peculiar features of his teaching may
be inferior and evil. He preferred to identify be noted. He held that if a man died unbap-
him with the Angel who delivered the Law tized, another was to be baptized in his stead
(Epiph. and Philastr.). Neander and Ewald and in his name, that at the day of resurrec-
have pointed out that these are legitimate tion he might not suffer punishment and be
deductions from the teaching of Philo. The made subject to the e^ovaia. Koa/ioiroios (cf.
156 CERINTHUS CHROMATIUS
I. Cor. XV. 29). He had learned at Alexandria Gesch. d. Volk. Israel Gieseler, Eccles. Hist.
;
;

to distinguish between the different degrees of Lipsius, Zur Quellen-Kritik d. Epiphanius ;

inspiration, and attributed to different Angels Dorner, Die Lehre v. d. Person Christi Mil- ;

the dictation severally of the words of Moses man, Hist, of Christianity Robertson, Hist,
;

and of tlie Prophets in this agreeing with


; of Ch.
Christ. Westcott, Canon of N.T., p.
;

Saturninus and the Ophites. He insisted upon 243 1866) Zahn, Gesch. der N.T. Canons,
(ed. ;

a partial observance of the " divine " law, vol. 220-262, vol. ii. 973 etc.
i. [j.m.f.]
such as circumcision and the ordinances of Christopher, St. (XpLffTO(p6po^), a martyr of
the sabbath resenmbling, in this severance of
; universal fame, baptized by St. Babylas, the
the genuine from the spurious elements of the martyr-bp. of Antioch, who suffered (c. 250)
law, the school which produced the Clemen- under Decius in Lycia. From early times
tina and the Book of Baruch. He did not even the untrustworthy character of some of the
scruple (ace. to Epiph.) to call him who gave popular stories of him has been acknowledged.
the law " not good," though the epithet may Usuard (a.d. 876) thus commemorated him
have been intended to express a charge of (July 23) after St. James, according to the
ethical narrowness rather than an identification common Western use, in his Martyrologium :

of the Lawgiver with the TrovTjpSs of Marcion. " At Samos in Licia. After he had been
Epiphanius admits that the majority of these scourged with iron rods, and then delivered
opinions rest upon report and oral communi- from the broiling flames by the virtue of Christ,
cation. This, coupled with the evident his head was at last severed from his body,
confusion of the statements recorded, makes which had fallen full of arrow- wounds, and the
it difficult to assign to Cerinthus any certain martyr's witness was complete."
place in the history of heresy. He can only For the legends respecting him (including
be regarded generally as a link connecting the very familiar, but quite unauthentic, one
Judaism and Gnosticism. The traditionary of his bearing the Christ-child), see D. C. B.
relations of Cerinthus to St. John have pro- (4-V0]. ed., S.V.), and two simple works
bably done more to rescue his name from written respectivelv by the late Archd. Allen
oblivion than his opinions. In the course of and W. G. Pearse (S.P.C.K.). [e.b.b.]
time popular belief asserted that St. John had ChromatiUS, bp. of Aquileia, one of the most
written his Gospel specially against the errors influential Western prelates of his day, thg
of Cerinthus, a belief curiously travestied by friend and correspondent of Ambrose, Jerome,
the counter- assertion that not St. John but Rufinus, and other leading ecclesiastics, and
Cerinthus himself was the author of both the a warm supporter of Chrysostom against his
Gospel and the Apocalypse. It is not difficult Oriental assailants. He was a native of
to account on subjective grounds for this latter Aquileia, where he resided under the roof of
assertion. The Chiliasm of Cerinthus was an his widowed mother, together with his brother
exaggeration of language current in the earliest Eusebius and his unmarried sisters. Jerome,
ages of the church and no work in N.T.
;
writing c. a.d. 374, congratulates the mother on
reproduced that language so ingenuously as her saintly offspring (Hieron. Ep. xliii. [vii.]).
the Apocalypse. The conclusion was easy He was still a presbyter when he took part in
that Cerinthus had but ascribed the Apoca- the council held at Aquileia, against the Arians
lypse to the Apostle to obtain credit and cur- Palladius and Secundianus, a.d. 381 (Am-
"
rency for his own forgery. The " Alogi brose, Gest. Concil. Aquil. tom. ii. pp. 834,
argued upon similar grounds against the § 45 835. § 51
; 843, § 76).
; On the death of
Fourth Gospel. It did not agree with the Valerian, Chromatius became bishop of his
Synoptists, and though it disagreed in every native city. The date is placed by Baronius
possible way with the alleged doctrines of towards the end of a.d. 388.
Cerinthus, yet the false-hearted author of the It was at his request that St. Ambrose ex-
Apocalypse was, they asserted, certainly the pounded the prophecy of Balaam in an epis-
writer of the Gospel. tolary form (Ambros. Ep. lib. i. ep. 50, § 16).
The Cerinthians (known also as Merinthians) To
his importunities, together with those of
do not appear to have long survived. If any Heliodorus, bp. of Altino, and the liberality
are identical with the Ebionites mentioned by with which they both contributed to the
Justin {Dial. c. Tryph. 48), some gradually expenses, we owe several of Jerome's transla-
diverged from their master in a retrograde tions of and commentaries on the books of
direction (Dorner, p. 32a) but the majority
; O.T. [e.g. Tobit, Prov., Eccl., Cant., andChron.).
were engulfed in sects of greater note. One In A.D. 392 he dedicated to Chromatius his
last allusion to them is found in the ecclesias-two books of Commentaries on Habakkuk
tical rule applied to them by Gennadius Mas- (Prolog, ad Habacc), and c. 397 j^ielded to his
siliensis " Ex istis si qui ad nos venerint,
: urgency and undertook the translation of
non requirendum ab eis utrum baptizati sint Chronicles (Praef. in Paralip.).
an non, sed hoc tantum, si credant in ecclesiae Chromatius was also an early friend of Rufi-
fidem, et baptizentur ecclesiastico baptismate" nus, who, whilst an inmate of the monastery at
(de Eccles. Dogmatibus, 22 Oehler, i. 348).
;
Aquileia, received baptism at his hands c. a.d.
The following primary and secondary autho- 371 (Rutin. Apolog. in Hieron. lib. i. p. 204).
rities upon Cerinthus may be mentioned When, on the publication of Rufinus's trans-
:

Irenaeus, adv. Haer. S. Hippolytus, Refuiatio lation of Origen's de Principiis, the friendship
;

omn. Haeres. (" Philosophumena ") Theod. between Jerome and Rufintis was exchanged
;

Haeret. Fab. Conip. Epiphanius, Epit. Panar., for violent animosity,


;
Chromatius main-
Haer. Philastrius de Haeret., Corp. Haeres- tained his friendship with both, and did his
;

olog. ; Augustine, de Haer. lib. viii. Pseudo- best to reconcile them. Chromatius imposed
;

Tertullian, Lib. adv. omn. Haeres. x. Eus. on Rufinus the task of translating the Eccle-
;

Hist. Eccles. ; Neander, Ch. Hist. Ewald, siastical History of Eusebius into Latin, to-
;
;

CHRYSIPPUS CHRYSOLOGUS, PETRUS 157

gether with Origen's Homilies on Joshua now known of him. In the Menology he is
(Rufm. Hist. p. 15). commemorated along with Anastasia, Dec. 22.
In the persecution of Chrysostom, Chroma-He was of " great Rome," " a man that feared
tius warmly embraced his cause. The posi- God," " teacher of the Christians " " and ;

tion he held in the West is shewn by Chrysos- when persecution was set on foot he was
tom's uniting his name with those of Innocent arrested and cast into prison." " Diocletian,
bp. of Rome and Venerus bp. of Milan in staying at Nice, wrote to Rome that all the
the protest addressed to the Western church Christians should die, and that Chrysogonus
(Pallad. c. ii. ad fin.). Chromatins sent Chry- should be brought bound to Nice, and when
sostom a letter of sympathy by the hands of he was brought he beheaded him." For Nice
the Western deputation [ib. c. iv.), and a.d. we should probably read Nicomedia. In
406 received from him a letter of grateful these acts it is easy to trace the effects of the
thanks (Chrys. Ep. civ.). Chromatins also first and second of Diocletian's edicts. Chry-
wrote in Chrysostom's behalf to Honorius, who sogonus evidently was not one of the traditors,
forwarded his letter to his brother Arcadius as so numerous at Rome under the first edict,
an evidence of the sentiments of the Western Feb. A.D. 303. Hence, when by the second
church (Pallad. c. iii. iv.). He died c. 407. edict, not long after, all the clergy were com-
Wehave under his name 18 homilies on "the mitted to jail, he exercised great influence
Sermon on the Mount," commencing with a from his prison on the faithful, still for the
Tractatus Singularis de Octo Beatitudinibus, most part unscathed and at large. The ques-
followed by 17 fragments of expositions on tion is to what we are to refer the statement
Matt. iii. 15-17 v.
; vi.
; His interpretation about the decree that all Christians should
is not allegorical, and his reflections
literal, be killed, and that Chrysogonus should be
moral rather than spiritual. Galland. Bibl. brought to Bithynia. His passion is assigned
Vet. Patr. viii. c. 15; Migne, Pair. Lat. xx. 247 to Dec. 22. By the third edict, on the great
seq. Tillemont, Mem. eccl. xi. pp. 538 seq.
; ;
anniversary festival of the emperor on the
Cave, Hist. Lit. i. p. 378. [e.v.] 2ist, the clergy were to sacrifice if they were
Chrysippus, one of four brothers, Cappa- to be included in the general release of prison-
docians by birth, of whom two others were ers; if not, torture was to be employed to
named Cosmas and Gabriel, as recorded by induce them. But there were no general
Cyril of Scythopolis. They left their native orders for the arrest of all Christians. The
country for Jerusalem, that they might be rescript of Trajan was still in force. But the
instructed by the celebrated abbat Euthymius. great festival must have brought to light many
In 455 Chrysippus was made the superior of a recusant. They might not be executed, but
the monastery of Laura, and subsequently of if they died under torture it was strictly legal.
the church of the Resurrection, by the patri- When, in the spring of a.d. 304, the fourth
arch Juvenal. He was raised to the presby- edict appears, it sets forth no new penalties
terate, and on the elevation of his brother it merely interprets the previous decrees in all
Cosmas, who had held the of&ce, to the see of the grim pregnancy of their meaning " certis :

Scythopolis, was appointed " guardian of the poenis intereant."


Holy Cross," which he held tiU his death. It may well be that the constancy of men
Chrysippus was a copious author, and accord- like Chrysogonus, under their tortures, was
ing to Cyril, who praises him as dav/xaffrbs among the things that drove Diocletian mad ;
avyyparpevs, " left many works worthy of all and that he left word at his hurried departure
acceptation," very few of which are extant. from Rome (Dec. 22, a.d. 303), " Send him
A" laudatio Joannis Baptistae," delivered on after me." The martyrdom is assigned by
the occasion of his festival, is printed in a Latin several Western authorities to Aquileia or the
translation by Combefis (Biblioth. Concionat. neighbouring Aquae Gradatae in Friulia. The
vii. 108). Fabricius mentions a Homilia in day to which it is almost universally assigned
Deiparam, printed in the Auctarium. Biblioth. in the West, from the Calendar of Carthage
Patr. (Paris, 1624), vol. ii. p. 424, and a Laud- onwards, is Nov. 24. Anastasia's commemo-
atio Theodori Martyris, which appears to be ration in the West is on Dec. 25, and in some of
lost. Photius (Cod. 171) records his having the Hieronymian martyrologies her passion is
read in a writing of Chrysippus a statement assigned to Sirmium, which was probably the
relating to the baptism of Gamaliel and Nico- scene of Diocletian's illness. But Usuard tells
demus by SS. Peter and John, and the martyr- that she was transported to the little isle
dom of the latter, which Chrysippus had Palmaruola (about lat. 410, long. 310) in the
derived from a fellow-presbyter, Lucian, to Tyrrhene sea. [e.b.b.]
whom it had been revealed in a dream, to- Chrysologus, Petrus, archbp. of Ravenna,
gether with the localities in which their bodies A.D. 433-454, said to have been born at Forum
and that of St. Stephen were to be found. Cornelii (Imola), according to Agnellus, in the
This is a very early example of the dreams episcopate of Cornelius, by whom he was
indicating the position of valuable relics which brougiit up (Serm. 165), ordained deacon, and
we meet with so frequently in the middle ages, made oeconomus of the church. The ordinary
by which the failing fortunes of a religious account of Peter's elevation to the see of
house were revived, or the rival attractions of Ravenna, which is repeated by successive bio-
another establishment emulated (Cyrill. Scy- graphers with ever-increasing definiteness of
thop. Vit. S. Euthym. Cave, Hist. Lit. i. 444
; statement, does too much violence to the facts
;

Combefis, Bibl. Cone. i. 8.) [e-v.] of history to be worthy of credit. The impro-
Chrysogonus (1), martyr in the persecution babilities of the story are exposed by Tille
of Diocletian, whose name was inserted in the mont, and it is stigmatized by Dupin as " a
Canon of the Mass from a very early period, groundless tale related by no credible author."
which shews his importance, though little is It is, however, given so circumstantially by

158 CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN


Agnellus in his Liber Pontificalis that it may H. E. lib. viii. c. 2). When Chrysostom
contain some distorted elements of truth. commenced practice as an advocate, his gift
In the 176 sermons of his still extant we of eloquence speedily displayed itself. His
look in vain for traces of the golden eloquence speeches were listened to with delight, and
to which he owed his surname. They are very were highly praised by Libanius, no mean
short, written in brief simple sentences his ; judge of rhetoric. A brilliant career was
meaning is always clear, and his language opening before the young man, leading to all
natural ; but there is nothing in them calcu- that men most covet, wealth, fame, high place.
lated to touch the heart or move the affections. But a change, gradual but mighty, came over
His fame as a preacher evidently depended his spirit, and like another young student of
more on voice and manner than on matter. the neighbouring province of Cilicia, " the
His sermons are almost all on subjects from things that were gain to him he counted loss
the gospels, usually the parables and miracles, for Christ." Like Timothy at the knees of
commencing with a course of six on the pro- Eunice, " from a child " Chrysostom had
digal son. Many other works ascribed to him, learnt from his devout mother the things that
including commentaries on Scripture, and were " able to make him wise unto salvation,"
letters against the Arians, have all perished by and his soul revolted at the contrast between
fire, partly in the siege of Imola, by Theodoric, the purity of the gospel standard and the
c. A.D. 524 ;
partly in the conflagration of the baseness of the aims and viciousness of the
archbishop's library at Ravenna, c. a.d. 700. practices prevalent in the profession he had
Tillemont, XV. ii4seq. CAwe, Hist. Lit. i. 432;
; chosen. To accept a fee for making the worse
Migne, Patr. Lat. Hi. pp. 9-680 Herzog, Real- appear the better cause seemed to his generous

;

Encyc. ii. 695. [e.v.] and guileless soul to be bribed to lie to take
Chrysostom, John ('iwdi'VTjj XpucrotrTo^ios). —
Satan's wages to sin against his own soul.
The surname " golden-mouthed," given to the His disinclination to the life of a lawyer was
great preacher of Antioch, and bp. of Constan- much increased by the influence of the exam-
tinople, on account of the magnificent brilliancy ple of his intimate friend Basil, the companion
of his eloquence (cf. Petrus Chrysologus), of his studies and the sharer of all his thoughts
has entirely superseded his personal name and plans. The two friends had agreed to
John, which alone is found in contemporary or follow the same profession but when Basil
;

closely subsequent writers. When the epithet decided on adopting a monastic life, and to
was first applied is unknown. There is no follow, in Chrysostom's words, " the true
trace of it in his lifetime, but it was in common philosophy," Chrysostom was unable at once
use before the end of the 5th cent. to resolve to renounce the world, to the attrac-
Chrysostom was born at Antioch probably tions of which his ardent nature was by no
A.D. 347. He was of good family his father ;
means insensible, and of which he was in some
Secundus filling the post of " magister mili- danger of becoming a slave. He was " a
tum " ((TTpaTTjXdrrjs), one of the eight men of never-failing attendant at the law courts, and
distinguished rank illustres viros Veget. de Re (
passionately enamoured of the theatre " [de
Militari,
armies.
ii. 9) —who commanded the imperial Sacerdot. lib. i. c. 14, p. 363). His friend
Basil's adoption of an ascetic life at first caused
His mother, Anthusa, was also a lady
of good family (Pallad. p. 40 ; Socr. vi. 3). an interruption of their intercourse. But life
Anthusa, while John was an infant, was left was intolerable separated from his second self.
a widow at the age of twenty, refused all offers He renewed his intimacy with Basil. The
of marriage, and devoted herself to the educa- pleasures and pursuits of the world became
tion of her boy and the care of his property distasteful to him, and he soon resolved to
(de Sacerdot. lib. i. c. 55). Her unremitting abandon it altogether, quitting mother and
devotion to her maternal duties excited ad- home, and finding some sacred retreat where
miration even from the heathen [Ep. ad Vid. he and his friend could devote themselves to
Jun. i. c. 2, p. 340). strict ascetism (ib. c. 4). This decisive change
St. Chrysostom's life may be conveniently — Chrysostom's conversion we should now call
divided into five epochs (a) His life as a lay-
: it' —was greatly promoted by the acquaintance
man at Antioch till his baptism and admission he formed at this period with the mild and holy
as a reader, a.d. 347-370 (6) his ascetic and
;
Meletius, the orthodox and legitimate bp. of
monastic life, a.d. 370-381 (c) his career as
;
Antioch, who had recently returned to his see
deacon, presbyter, and preacher at Antioch, after one of his many banishments for the
A.D. 381-398 {d) his episcopate at Constan-
;
faith. Meletius quickly observed the intel-
tinople, A.D. 398-404 (e) exile, a.d. 404-407. lectual promise of the young lawyer, and,
;

(a) Life as a Layman at Antioch. The intel- — enamoured of the beauty of his disposition,
sought frequent opportunities of intercourse,
lectual power manifested at a very early age
marked him out as fitted for one of the learned and in a prophetic spirit declared the greatness
professions. The bar was chosen, and at of his future career (Pallad. p. 40). Up to this
about 1 8 years of age he began to attend the time Chrysostom, though the child of Christ-
lectures of the celebrated sophist Libanius, ian parents, had remained unbaptized, a not
the intimate friend and correspondent of the unfrequent practice at this epoch. The time
emperor Julian, and tutor of Basil the Great, for public profession of his faith was now come,
who had come to end his days in his native and after a probation of three years, Meletius
city of Antioch. The genius and ability of the baptized him, and ordained him reader. This
pupil excited the greatest admiration in his was in a.d. 369 or 370, when Chrysostom was
master, who, being asked on his deathbed, c. about 23 years old (Pallad. p. 41).
a.d. 395, which of his pupils he thought wor- (b) Ascetic and Monastic Life. —
Baptism re-
thiest to succeed him, replied, " John, if the stored the balance which Chrysostom tells us
Christians had not stolen him from us " (Soz. had been so seriously disturbed by Basil's
CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN 159

higher religious attainments {de Sacerdot. lib. purpose. Among those suitable for the epis-
i. c. 3, p. 363). He became in the truest sense copate, Chrysostom and Basil were pointed
" a new man " (Pallad. p. 184). His desire to out, though they were not yet even deacons.
flee from the world, with his beloved Basil, Chrysostom's awful sense of the weight and
was established, and only frustrated by the responsibility of the priestly office, which
passionate entreaties of his weeping mother breathes in every line of his treatise de Sacer-
that her only child, for whom she had given up dotio, and of his own unfitness, made him
all, would not desert her. The whole scene istremble at the idea of ordination. Basil, on
narrated by Chrysostom in a passage of ex- the contrary, he considered to be well qualified,
quisite simplicity and tenderness (de Sacerdot.and he was fully resolved that the church
lib. i. c. 5, pp. 363-365). should not lose the services of his friend.
His affectionate
nature could not resist a mother's tears. In While, therefore, he pretended acquiescence in
spite of Basil's continued urgency, he yielded his friend's proposition that they should decide
so far as to remain at home. But if out of alike in the matter, he secretly resolved to
filial regard he abstained from deserting his avoid the dreaded honour by concealment.
home for a monastery, he would make a mon- When the time of consecration arrived, and
astery of his home. He practised the most Basil was carried before the bishops, and re-
rigid asceticism, ate little and seldom, and that luctantly forced to accept ordination, Chry-
of the plainest, slept on the bare ground, and sostom was nowhere to be found, and it was
rose frequently for prayer. He rarely left the represented to Basil that he had been already
house, and, to avoid his old habit of slander, consecrated. When too late Basil discovered
kept almost unbroken silence. It is not sur- the unfaithfulness to their compact, and
prising that his former associates called him upbraided Chrysostom ;
his complaints were
morose and unsociable (ib. lib. vi. c. 12, p. 431). received with laughter and loud expressions
Upon some of these associates, however, his of thankfulness at the success of his plot (de
influence began to tell. Two of his fellow- Sacerdot. lib. i. c. 3, p. 365). [Basilius.]
pupils under Libanius, Maximus, afterwards About A.D. 374 Chrysostom carried into
bp. of Seleucia, and Theodorus, bp. of Mop- effect his resolution of devoting himself to an
suestia, adopted the ascetic life under the ascetic life, and left his home for a monastic
superintendence of Diodorus and Carterius, community on one of the mountain ranges S.
who presided over a monastery in or near of Antioch. As there is no reference in any of
Antioch. From Diodorus Chr\^sostom learnt his writings to any opposition from his mother,
the clear common-sense mode of interpreting it is probable that her death had left him free.
Holy Scripture (repudiating the allegorizing After four years spent in unremitting auster-
principle), of which he and Theodore became ities, he left the society of his kind, and, dwel-
such distinguished representatives. The in- ling in a mountain cavern, practised still more
ability of his friend Theodore to part definitely rigid self-discipline (Pallad. p. 41). At the
with the world, and stifle natural instincts, end of two years his health so completely gave
was the occasion of the composition of Chry- way that he was forced to return to his home
sostom's earliest extant treatises. Theodore's in Antioch. To these austerities may be
love for a girl named Hermione led him to attributed that debilitated frame, weakness of
leave the ascetic brotherhood and return to digestion, and irritability of temperament, to
secular life. Chrysostom's heart was deeply which his constant physical sufferings and
stirred at this. He regarded it as a sin to be many of his chief difficulties and calamities are
repented of and forsaken if Theodore would not remotely traceable.
not forfeit salvation. He addressed two (c) A Preacher and Presbyter at Antioch. —
letters to him full of impassioned eloquence, Chrysostom did not return to Antioch to be
earnestly calling him to penitence and amend- idle. He was ordained deacon by Meletius
ment. His fervid remonstrances succeeded. A.D. 381, shortly before the latter left to pre-
Theodore gave up his engagement, and finally side over the oecumenical council of Constan-
abandoned the world (ad Theodorum Lapsum, tinople (Pallad. p. 42). Meletius died during
Ep. i. ii.; Socr. H. E. vi. 3). the session of the council, and his successor
We now come to a passage in Chrysostom's Flavian raised Chrysostom to the presby-
life which we must condemn as utterly at terate early in a.d. 386 (ib.). During his
variance with truth and honour. Yet we five years' diaconate he had gained great
must bear in mind that the moral standpoint popularity by his aptness to teach, and his
of the Fathers was on this point different from influence had made itself widely felt at
our own. It was generally held that the cul- Antioch. While deacon he composed the de
pability of an act of deception depended upon Virginitate the Ep. ad Viduatn Jwiiorem,
:

its purpose, and that if this was good the addressed to the young widow of Therasius
deception was laudable. Chrysostom himself (c. 381) its sequel de non Iterando Conjugio
; ;

says, " There is a good deceit such as many and the orations de Martyre Babyla. After his
have been deceived by, which one ought not ordination he preached his first sermon before
even to call a deceit at all," instancing that the bishop, and a vast crowd was gathered
of Jacob, "which was not a deceit, but an by the fame of his eloquence (Sermo, cum
economy " (Homil. vi. in Col. ii. 8). On this Presbyt. fuit Ordinatus, de se ac de Episcopo,
principle, which every healthy conscience deque Populi M
ultiiudine) The succeeding
now repudiates, Chrysostom proceeded to plan ten years, embracing Chrysostom's life as a
.

and execute a deliberate fraud to entrap his presbyter at Antioch, were chiefly devoted to
friend Basil into consecration to the episco- the cultivation of the gift of pulpit eloquence
pate. Several sees were now vacant in Syria, on which his celebrity mainly rests. It was
which it was desirable to fill without delay. during this period that " the great clerk and
A body of prelates met at Antioch for this godly preacher," as our First Homily terms
160 CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN
him, delivered the greater part of the dis- to awaken repentance among the dissolute
courses extant, which must be but a very small crowds hanging on his impassioned words.
portion of those preached, for he preached re- Just before Easter Flavian returned with the
gularly twice a week, on Saturday and Sunday, glad tidings that their crime was pardoned. The
besides Lent and saints' days, and, as we learn homily delivered by Chrysostom on Easter
from his homilies on Genesis, sometimes five day (the 21st of the series) describes the inter-
days in succession (Tillemont, tom. xi. p. 34)- view of Flavian with Theodosius, the prelate's
Flavian appointed him frequently to preach moving appeal for clemency, and its immedi-
in the cathedral. Whenever he preached the ate effect on the impressionable mind of the
church was densely thronged, the hearers tes- emperor, who granted a complete amnesty and
tifying their delight in loud and noisy applause. urged Flavian's instant return to relieve the
This was highly offensive to Chrysostom, who Antiochenes from their terrible suspense. One
often rebuked their unseemly behaviour {adv. happy result of this crisis was the conversion
Arian. de Incomprehen. Dei Natura, Homil. of a large number of the still heathen popula-
iii. c. 7, p. 471
; Homil. iv. § 6, p. 480). The tion to Christianity {Homil. de Anna. I. c. i,
most remarkable series of homilies, containing vol. iv. p. 812).
his grandest oratorical flights, and evincing These events occurred in the spring of a.d.
most strikingly his power over the minds 387. For ten years longer Chrysostom con-
and passions of men, are the Homilies on the tinued as a preacher and teacher at Antioch.
Statues, delivered in March and April, a.d. To this period may be assigned his comment-
387, while the fate of Antioch was hanging in aries on Gen. and Pss., St. Matt, and St. John,
awful suspense on the will of the justly of- Acts, Rom., Cor., Gal., and Eph. Those on
fended emperor Theodosius. The demand for Tim. i., ii.. Tit., and on the other Epp. of
a large subsidy to pay a liberal donative to St. Paul, are considered by Tillemont to have
the army had exasperated the citizens. The been certainly delivered at Constantinople
ominous silence with which the proclamation (Till. Mem. eccl. tom. xi. pp. 92-97, 370-376).
of the edict was received, Feb. 26, broken only (d) Episcopate of Constantinople. — Chrysos-
by the wailings of the women, was soon suc- tom's residence at Antioch ended in a.d. 397.
ceeded by mutinous cries, and all the symp- In Sept. the bp. of Constantinople, the amiable
toms of a popular outbreak. The passions of and indolent Nectarius, died. The vacant see
the mob were stimulated by those who had was one of the most dignified and influential in
nothing to lose and might gain from public the church. Public expectation was excited
disorder. The influence of Flavian might as to his successor. The nomination rested
have calmed the tumult, but he was from with the emperor Arcadius, but virtually with
home. The rabble, swelling in numbers and the prime minister Eutropius. Passing by
fury as it rushed through the city, proceeded numerous candidates, he determined to ele-
to acts of open violence. The public baths vate one who had no thought of being a
were ransacked the praetorium was attacked candidate at all, John of Antioch, whose
;

and the mob with difficulty repulsed, the eloquence had impressed him during a recent
governor saving himself by flight through a visit to Antioch on state business. Chrysos-
back door, and finally the hall of judgment was tom's name was received with delight by the
stormed. This was the scene of their crowning electing prelates, and at once unanimously
act of insurrection. The portraits of the accepted. The difficulty lay with Chrysostom
emperors, which decorated the walls of the himself and the people of Antioch. The
"
court, were pelted with stones and filth, and double danger of a decided " nolo episcopari
torn to shreds, the August! themselves were on Chrysostom's part and of a public commo-
loaded with curses, and the statues of Theo- tion among the Antiochenes was overcome
dosius and his deceased wife, the excellent by stratagem. Asterius, the " comes orien-
Flaccilla, were torn from their pedestals and tis," in accordance with secret instructions
ignominiously dragged through the streets. from Eutropius, induced Chrysostom to ac-
Further outrages were only stopped by the company him to a martyr's chapel outside the
appearance of a band of archers dispatched by city walls. There he was apprehended by the
the prefect. The mutiny quelled, calm reflec- officers of the government, and hurried over
tion set before them the probable consequences the 800 miles under military escort from stage
of this recent fury. Panic fear, as is usual, to stage, and reached his imperial see a closely
succeeded the popular madness. The out- guarded prisoner. His remonstrances were
bursts of unrestrained passion, to which the unheeded his inquiries met with obstinate
;

emperor was subject, were well known. The silence. Resistance being useless, Chrysostom
insult to his beloved empress would be certain felt it more dignified to submit. He was
to be keenly resented and terribly avenged. consecrated Feb. 26, 398, by Theophilus,
It was only too probable that an edict would patriarch of Alexandria. The duty was very
be issued for the destruction of Antioch or for unwelcome, for Theophilus had left no stone
the massacre of its inhabitants, foreshadowing unturned to secure the nomination of Isidore,
that of Thessalonica, which three years later a presbyter of Alexandria. The ceremony
struck horror into the Christian world. Their was witnessed by a vast multitude, assembled
only hope lay in the intercession of Flavian, to listen to the inaugural sermon of one of
who, regardless of his age and the serious ill- whose eloquence they had heard so much.
ness of his sister, had instantly started for the This " sermo enthronisticus " is lost (Socr.
imperial city, to lay at the emperor's feet the H. E. vi. 2 Soz. H. E. viii. 2 Pallad. p. 42).
; ;

confession of his people and to supplicate for Constantinople soon learnt the difference
pardon. Day by day, during this terrible between the new bishop and his predecessor.
suspense, lasting for three weeks, Chrysostom Chrysostom at once disfurnished the epis-
devoted his noblest gifts as a sacred orator copal residence, and disposed of the costly
CHRYSOSTOM, JOHll CHRYSOSTOM," JOHN 161

plate and rich equipment for the benefit of the a river of fire. The empress herself in royal
poor and the hospitals (Pallad. pp. 46, 47). diadem and purple, attended by nobles and
Instead of banqueting with the laity, he ate ladies of distinction, walked by the side of the
the simplest fare in his solitary chamber (ib. bishop, in the rear of the chest enclosing the
pp. loi, 102). He studiously avoided the sacred bones. It was dawn before the church
court and association with the great, and even was reached and Chrysostom began his sermon.
ordinary conversation, except when duty com- It was fuUof extravagant laudations of Euxodia
pelled {ib. pp. 103, 120-123). Such behaviour and of ecstatic expressions of joy, which after-
could hardly fail to be misrepresented. To wards formed a ground of accusation against
the populace, accustomed to the splendour of him {Hotnil. Dicta Postquam Reliquiae, etc.
former bishops, Chrysostom's simplicity ap- vol. xii. pp. 4.68-473). The next day the em-
peared unworthy of his lofty station, and he peror with his court visited the shrine, and,
was openly charged with parsimony, morose- laying aside his diadem, reverenced the holy
ness, and pride (Socr. H. E. vi. 4 Soz.. H. E. martyrs. After the departure of Arcadius Chry-
;

viii. 9). Nor was the contrast more acceptable sostom delivered a second enthusiastic homily
to most of his clergy, whose moral tone was in praise of his piety and humility {Homil.
far from elevated. Chrysostom, with uncom- Dicta Praesente Imperatore, ib. pp. 474-480).
promising zeal, attempted to bring them back At the same period the largeness of Chrysos-
to simplicity of life and to activity in their tom's heart and the sincerity of his Christian
calling. He deposed some on charges of love were m.anifested by his care for the spirit-
homicide and adultery, and repelled others ual state of the numerous Goths at Constan-
from the Eucharist. He set his face resolutely tinople. Some were Catholics, but the major-
against the perilous custom of receiving ity were Arians. He had portions of the Bible
" spiritual sisters " {cTi'veicraKTai), which was translated into their vernacular, and read by
frequently the source of the grossest immorali- a Gothic presbyter to his countrymen in the
ties. To obviate the attractions of the Arians church of St. Paul, who afterwards addressed
who at night and at early dawn gathered large them in their own tongue {Homil. 8, vol. xii.
crowds by their antiphonal hymns under por- pp. 512-526). Chrysostom himself frequently
ticoes and in the open air, as well as for the preached to them by an interpreter. He
benefit of those unable to attend the church in ordained native readers, deacons, and presby-
the day, he revived the old custom of nocturnal ters, and dispatched missionaries to the Gothic
services with responsive chanting, to the in- tribes who still remained on the banks of the
dignation of those clergy to whom ease was Danube, and consecrated a bishop from among
dearer than the spiritual improvement of themselves named Unilas (Theod. H. E. v.
their flocks (Pallad. p. 47; Soz. H. E. viii. 8 30
;
Ep. 14, 207).
; Having learnt that the
Homil. in Acta, 26, c. 3, p. 212). His dis- nomad Scythian tribes on the banks of the
ciplinary measures were rendered more un- Danube were desirous of being instructed iu
popular by his lack of a conciliatory manner, the faith, he at once dispatched missionaries
coupled with irritability of temper and no to them, and corresponded with Leontius, bp.
small obstinacy (Socr. H. E. vi. 3, 21 Soz. of Ancyra, with regard to the selection of able
;

H. E. viii. 3). He was also too much men from his diocese for this work (ib. H. E.
swayed by his archdeacon, Serapion, a proud, V. 31). In his zeal for the suppression of pagan
violent man, who is reported to have ex- idolatry he obtained an imperial edict, a.d.
claimed at an assembly of the clergy, " You 399, for the destruction of the temples in
will never be able, bishop, to master these Phoenicia, which was carried out at the cost of
mutinous priests unless you drive them before some Christian ladies of Constantinople, who
you with a single rod " (Pallad. 18, 19 Socr. also supplied funds for missionary exertions
;

H. E. vi. 4 Soz. viii. 9).


; in that country {ib. v. 29). These efforts for
But while his relations with his clergy were the propagation of the faith were very dear to
becoming increasingly embittered, he stood Chrysostom's heart, and even during his exile
high in favour with the people, who flocked he superintended and directed them by letter
to his sermons, and drank in greedily his {Ep. 53, 54, 123, 126). He endeavoured to
vehement denunciations of the follies and crush false doctrine wherever it was making
vices of the clergy and aristocracy (Socr. head. Having learnt that the Marcionite
vi. 4, 5). He was no less popular with Arca- heresy was infecting the diocese of Cyrus, he
dius and his empress, the Prankish general's wrote to the then bishop, desiring him to
daughter, Eudoxia, who was beginning to sup- expel it, and offering to help him in putting
plant the author of her elevation, the eunuch in force the imperial edicts for that purpose.
Eutropius, and to make her feeble partner He thus evidenced, in the words of Theodoret,
bow to her more powerful will. For a time the that, like St. Paul, he bore in his heart " the
bishop and the empress, between whom was care of all the churches " {H. E. v. 31).
afterwards so uncompromising an hostility, Eutropius fell from power in 399. He had
vied with one another in expressions of mutual hoped for a subservient bishop but not ;

admiration and esteem. Towards the latter only did Chrysostom refuse to countenance
part of 398, not long after Chrysostom had his nefarious designs, but denounced his vices
taken possession of his see, the relics of some from the pulpit with unsparing fidelity. The
anonymous martyrs were translated by night unhappy man, hurled in a moment from the
with great ceremony to the martyry of St. pinnacle of his greatness, took refuge for a
Thomas, on the seashore of Drypia, about nine while in the church, but was ultimately be-
miles from the city, which the empress had headed at Chalcedon (Socr. H. E. vi. 5 Soz. ;

instituted in a fit of religious excitement. So H. E. viii. 7 Philost. H. E. xi. 6 Zosimus,


; ;

lengthened was the procession and so brilliant V. 18 Chrys. Hom. in Eutrop. vol. iii. pp.
;

the torches, that Chrysostom compares it to 454-460 ; de Capto Eutrop. ib. pp. 460-482).

u
;

i6^ CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN


Early in a.d. 400 Gainas, the haughty Goth authority until the council of Chalcedon (can.
who had had a large share in the downfall of 28). At a conference of bishops held at Con-
Eut ropius, demanded the surrender of three lead- stantinople in the spring of a.d. 400, Eusebius
ing ministers, Aurelianustheconsul, Saturninus, of Valentinopolis accused his brother bishop,
and count John the empress's chief favoiurite. Antoninus of Ephesus, of selling ordination to
To relieve the emperor of embarrassment, they bishoprics, melting down the church plate for
surrendered themselves. Their lives were in his own benefit, and other grave offences
extreme danger. Chrysostom resorted to (Pallad. p. 126). A delegacy was dispatched
Gainas's camp, pleaded the cause of the hos- to Asia to investigate these charges. Many
tages, and endeavoured to persuade the Goth dishonest and vexatious delays occurred, and
to lessen his extravagant demands to be made the accused bishop died before any decision
consul and commander-in-chief, which would could be arrived at (ib. pp. 130-133). The
have placed the emperor at his mercy. Gain- Ephesian clergy and the bishops of the circuit
as had urged his claim for one of the churches appealed to Chrysostom to make peace.
of Constantinople for Arian worship, but Prompt at the call of duty, Chrysostom,
Chrysostom's eloquence and spiritual author- though it was the depth of winter (Jan. 401),
ity overpowered him, and he desisted for a and he in very feeble health, proceeded to
time at least in pressing his demand (Soz. Ephesus. On his arrival he exercised metro-
H. E. viii. 4 Socr. H. E. vi. 6 Theod. H. E.
; ; political authority, deposing six bishops con-
V. 32, 33 ; Chrys. Horn, cum Saturn, et Aurel. victed of simony, and correcting with unspar-
etc., vol. iii. pp. 482-487). The sequel belongs ing hand the venality and licentiousness of the
to general history. The emperor, as a last clergy (ib. pp. 134-135 Socr. H. E. vi. 10
; ;

resort, declared Gainas a public enemy ; the Soz. H. E. viii. 6). His excessive severity did
inhabitants of the city rose against the Goths not reconcile the reluctant ecclesiastics to
a general massacre ensued, and Gainas was the questionable authority upon which he
forced to flee for safety (Zosim. v. 18-22). acted. The results of Chrysostom's absence
At this epoch the power and popularity of of three months from Constantinople were dis-
Chrysostom was at its culminating point. We astrous. He had entrusted his episcopal
have now to trace itsswift and complete de- authority to Severian, bp. of Gabala, who
cline. The author of his overthrow was the basely abused his trust to undermine Chry-
empress Eudoxia. Her shortlived religious sostom's influence at court. The cabal against
zeal had burnt itself out, and when she found Chrysostom was headed by the empress and
Chrysostom too clear-sighted to be imposed her favourite ladies, of whose extravagance of
upon by an outward show of piety, and too attire and attempts to enhance their personal
uncompromising to connive at wrong-doing charms, the bishop had spoken with contemp-
even in the highest places, and that not even tuous ridicule, and among whom the wealthy
her rank as empress could save her and her and licentious widows Marsa, Castricia, and
associates from public censure, her former Eugraphia, " who used for the ruin of their
attachment was changed into the most im- souls the property their husbands had gained
placable enmity. Jealousy of Chrysostom's by extortion " (Pallad. pp. 35, 66), were con-
influence over Arcadius contributed to her spicuous. This cabal received an important
growing aversion. Chrysostom was now the accession by the arrival of two bishops from
only obstacle to her obtaining undisputed Palestine, Antiochus of Ptolemais and the
supremacy over her imbecile husband, and grey-haired Acacius of Beroea (Pallad. 49).
through him over the Eastern world. Means [AcAcius ;Antiochus.] Serapion, Chrysos-
must be found to get rid of this obstacle also. tom's archdeacon, had kept his master in-
Chrysostom himself afforded the opportunity formed of Severian's base proceedings, and
inhis excessof zeal for the purity of the church had continually urged his speedy return. His
by overstepping his episcopal jurisdiction, not return was the signal for the outbreak of open
then so strictly defined as in modern dioceses. which Chrysostom's vehement and
hostilities,
Properly speaking, the bp. of Constantinople unguarded language in the pulpit exasperated.
had no jurisdiction beyond the limits of his Soon after his return, he chose his text from
own city and diocese. For Constantinople, the history of Elijah, and exclaimed, " Gather
as a city whose imperial dignity was of modern together to me those base priests that eat at
creation, was not a metropolitan see, but sub- Jezebel's table, that I may say to them, as
ject ecclesiastically to the metropolitan of Elijah of old, How long halt ye between two
'

Heraclea (otherwise Perinthus), who was ex- opinions ? " (ib. 74). This allusion was only
'

arch of the province of Thrace. The claims too clear. He had called the empress Jezebel.
of Heraclea becoming antiquated, the prelates The haughty Eudoxia could not brook the
of Alexandria, as the first of the Eastern insult, and the doom of Chrysostom was sealed.
churches, gradually assumed metropolitan But until the plot was ripe it was necessary to
rights over Byzantium. But subjection to keep up the semblance of friendship, and even
any other see was soon felt to be inconsistent of deference, towards one who could still make
with the dignity of an imperial city, and by the ecclesiastical authority felt. Some half-heard
third canon of the oecumenical council held words of Severian, uttered in annoyance at
within its walls, a.d. 381, its bishop was de- Serapion's discourtesy, were distorted by the
clared second to the bp. of Rome, after him archdeacon into a blasphemous denial of
coming the metropolitans of Alexandria and Christ's Divinity (Socr. H. E. vi. 10 Soz. ;

Antioch. But this precedence was simply H. E. viii. 10). The charge was rashly
honorary, and although Nectarius had set the credited by Chrysostom, who, without further
precedent followed by Chrysostom of exer- inquiry, sentenced him to excommunica-
cising jurisdiction in the Thracian and Asiatic tion and banishment from Constantinople.
dioceses, the claim did not receive legal Chrysostom was still the idoJ of the common
CHRYS03T0M, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN 163

people. The news spread that Severian had attempt to obtain a condemnation of Origen
insulted their bishop, and Severian's life would from the bishops then at Constantinople. An
have been in danger had he not speedily fled interview with the accused monks, at which
to Chalcedon, and put the Bosphorus be- Epiphanius was obliged to acknowledge that
tween himself and the enraged mob. All the he had not read a page of their writings, and
authority of the emperor and the passionate had condemned them on hearsay, seems to
entreaties of the empress, who even placed have opened his eyes to the real character of
her infant son on Chrysostom's knees in the Theophilus and the nature of the transaction
church of the Apostles as an irresistible plea in which he had become an agent. He refused
for yielding to her petition, were needed to to take any further share in the designs of
extort forgiveness for Severian. Chrj'sostom Theophilus, and set sail for Cyprus, dying on
interceded for him with the populace [Horn. his voyage or soon after his return (Socr. H. E.
de Recipiendo Severiano, vol. iii. pp. 492-494), vi. 12-14 Soz. H. E. viii. 14, 15).
;

and the semblance of peace was restored Shortly after Epiphanius's departure Theo-
(Socr. and Soz. m.s.). philus arrived at Constantinople, accompanied
The secret intrigues, checked for the time, by a bodyguard of rough sailors from his own
soon broke out afresh. The allusion to Jezebel city of Alexandria, laden with costly presents.
was not forgiven by Eudoxia, and Severian He received a vociferous welcome from the
was equally implacable. The clergy were crews of the Egyptian corn-ships, but the
eager to rid themselves of one who, in the bishops and clergy of the city kept aloof. He
words of Palladius, " like a lamp burning be- refused all communications with Chrysostom,
fore sore eyes," was intolerable from the bril- rejected all his offers of hospitality, and, as-
liancy of his virtues. All they wanted was a suming the position of an ecclesiastical supe-
powerful leader. rior, not of a defendant about to take his trial,
Such a leader was found in Theophilus, bp. openly declared that he had come to depose
of Alexandria, who had been unwillingly com- Chrysostom for grave offences. The three
pelled to consecrate Chrysostom. A pretext weeks between his arrival and the commence-
for his interference was afforded by the hos- ment of the synod were devoted to ingratiating
pitality shewn by Chrysostom and his friends himself with influential personages and the
to some Egyptian monks, known from their disaffected clergy, by flattery, sumptuous
remarkable stature as " the Tall Brethren " banquets, and splendid gifts. Arcadius, pro-
[Ammonius], whom Theophilus had treated bably unaware of the plans of the secret cabal,
with great injustice and cruelty, nominally remonstrated with Chrysostom for his delay
because of their Origenistic views, but really in proceeding to Theophilus's trial, which
because they were privy to his own avarice Chrysostom justified by his unwillingness to
and other vices (Isid. Pelusiot. Ep. i. 142). usurp a jurisdiction not legitimately his (Socr.
Chrysostom had received them kindly, and H. E. vi. 15 Soz. H. E. viii. 16
; Pallad.
;

written in their behalf to Theophilus, who re- 65, 66 ; Chrys. Ep. ad Innocent, i). Theo-
plied with an indignant remonstrance against philus had no such scruples. He assumed as
protecting heretics and interfering in the affairs patriarch of Alexandria the supremacy over
of another diocese. The monks claimed the all Eastern bishops, and claimed the right of
right of prosecuting their defamers (Pallad. summoning Chrysostom as a suffragan before
pp. 51-62 ; Socr. H. E. vi. 7, 9 ; Soz. H. E. his tribunal. Apprehensive of the well-known
viii. 12, 13). A personal appeal to Eudoxia popularity of Chrysostom with the lower
secured them this. Theophilus was summoned orders, he dared not venture to hold a synod
to appear before a council for the investigation in Constantinople. The place chosen was a
of the whole case of these Nitrian monks, suburb of Chalcedon, on the other side of the
while their calumniators were called upon to Bosphorus, known as " the Oak," where was
substant iate their charges or suffer punishment. a large church with contiguous buildings for
Theophilus, however, devised a scheme for the clergy and monks. Thirty-six bishops, of
turning the tables upon Chrysostom, and whom all but seven were Egyptians, Theo-
transforming the council into one before which philus's suffragans, formed the council. The
Chrysostom himself might be arraigned (Pallad. Asiatic bishops were mainly such as Chrysos-
p. 64). [DlOSCORUS.] tom had made his enemies during his recent
To pave the way for the execution of this visitation. None was more hostile than Ger-
plot Theophilus induced Epiphanius, the ven- ontius of Nicomedia, whom he had deposed.
erable bp. of Salamis, to visit Constantinople, The presidential chair was occupied by the
with the decrees of a council recently held in bp. of Heraclea, as metropolitan. To this
Cyprus, by which the tenets of Origen which packed council, the members of which were at
the Nitrian monks were charged with holding the same time " judges, accusers, and wit-
were condemned, for Chrysostom's signature nesses " (Phot. Cod. 59, ad init.), in the middle
(Socr. H. E. vi. 10-14
; Soz. H. E. viii. of July, A.D. 403, Chrysostom was summoned
14). Epiphanius petulantly declined the to answer to a list of charges containing 29
honours and hospitality prepared for him articles drawn up by the archdeacon John.
until Chrysostom had formally condemned Many of these were contemptibly frivolous,
Origen and expelled " the Tall Brethren." others grossly exaggerated, some entirely
Chrysostom replied that he left both to the false (Pallad. p. 66). They had reference to
coming council, and would not prejudge the the administration of his church and the al-
matter. The relations between the two pre- leged malversation of its funds to his violent
;

lates were further embittered by the ordination and tyrannical behaviour towards his clergy
of a deacon by Epiphanius in violation of to his private habits —
had
;

the canons of the church (Socr. H. E. vi. 11). views with women "
" he
— private inter-
" he dined gluttonously
No better success attended Epiphanius's by himself as a cyclops would eat " ; to ritual
164 CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN
irregularities—" he robed and unrobed himself ing for his restoration and demanding that
on his episcopal throne, and ate a lozenge after his cause should be heard before a general
celebration " (Pallad. p. 66), and had violated council. Constantinople was almost in re-
the rule as to fasting communion to his
; volt (Socr. H. E. vi. 16 Soz. H. E. viii.
;

having ordained unworthy persons and ;


18 Theod. H. E. v. c. 34
; Zosim. Hist.
;

heretical deductions were drawn from some V. 23 Pallad. p. 15).


; The following night
incautious and enthusiastic expressions in his the city was convulsed by an earthquake,
sermons. A second list of charges under i8 felt with peculiar violence in the bedroom
heads was presented by Isaac the monk. In of Eudoxia. The empress fell at Arcadius's
these the accusation of violence and inhos- feet, and entreated him to avert the wrath
pitality was renewed, and he was charged with of Heaven by revoking Chrysostom's sentence.
invading the jurisdiction of other prelates Messengers were dispatched to discover
(Phot. Cod. 59 Chrys. Ep. 125, ad Cyr.).
; The the exiled prelate, bearing letters couched
most flagrant charge was that of uttering in terms of the most abject humiliation.
treasonable words against the empress, com- The news of Chrysostom's recall caused uni-
paring her to Jezebel (Pallad. p. 74). This versal rejoicing. Late as it was, a whole
was construed into exciting the people to fleet of barques put forth to meet him. The
rebellion, and on this his enemies chiefly relied. Bosphorus blazed with torches and resounded
The sessions lasted 14 days. Four times was with songs of triumph (Theod. H. E. v. 34).
Chrysostom summoned to appear before the Chrysostom at first halted outside the city,
self-appointed tribunal. His reply was digni- claiming to be acquitted by a general council
fied and unwavering. He refused to present before resuming his see. The people sus-
himself before a packed synod of his enemies, pected another plot, and loudly denounced
to which he was summoned by his own clergy, the emperor and empress. Fearing a serious,
and he appealed to a lawfully constituted outbreak, Arcadius sent a secretary to desire
general council. But irregular as the synod Chrysostom to enter the walls without delay.
was, he expressed his readiness, in the interests As a loyal subject he obeyed. On passing the
of peace, to appear before it, if his avowed gates he was borne aloft by the crowd, carried
enemies, Theophilus, Severianus, Acacius, and into the church, placed on his episcopal seat,
Antiochus, were removed from the number and forced to deliver an extemporaneous ad-
of the judges. As this proposal met with no dress. His triumph was now as complete as
response, Chrysostom summoned
a counter- that of his enemies a few days before. Theo-
synod of bishops attached to his cause, forty philus, and some of the leaders of the cabal,
in number, whose letter of remonstrance to lingered on in Constantinople, hoping for a
Theophilus was treated with contempt. At turn in the tide. But they were now the un-
its twelfth sitting a message from the court popular part}', and could hardly shew them-
urged the packed synod to come to a speedy selves in the streets without being attacked
decision. To this it yielded prompt obedience. and ill-treated. The person of Theophilus was
By a unanimous vote it condemned Chry- no longer safe in Constantinople while a more
;

sostom as contumacious and deposed him formidable danger was to be apprehended if


from his bishopric. The charge of uttering the general council, which Chrysostom pre-
treasonable words was left to the civil power, vailed or the emperor to convoke, met and
his enemies secretly hoping for a capital proceeded to inquire into his conduct. On the
sentence (Socr. H. E. vi. 15 Soz. H. E.
; plea that his diocese could no longer put up
viii. 17). The imperial rescript confirming with his absence, Theophilus abruptly left
the sentence of deposition, however, simply the city, and sailed by night for Alexandria
condemned the bishop to banishment for life. (Socr. H. E. vi. 17 Soz. H. E. viii. 19 ;
;

The indignation of the people knew no bounds, Chrys. Ep. ad Innocent.). His flight was
when, as the evening wore on, the sentence on speedily followed by the assembling of a
their beloved bishop became generally known. council of about 60 bishops, which annulled
A crowd collected round Chrysostom's resid- the proceedings at the council of the Oak, and
ence, and kept watch for 3 days and nights declared Chrysostom still legitimate bp. of
at its doors and those of the great church, lest Constantinople. This judicial sentence re-
he should be forcibly carried off. A word moved all Chrysostom's scruples, and he
from him would have raised an insurrection. resumed his episcopal duties (Soz. H. E.
But the sermons he addressed to the vast viii. 19). The first result of the failure of
multitudes in the cathedral advocated patience the machinations of Chrysostom's enemies
and resignation to the Divine Will. On the was an apparently complete reconciliation
third day, during the noontide meal, he slipped between him and the empress, who seemed
out unperceived by a side door, and quietly entirely to have forgotten her former resent-
surrendered himself to the imperial officers, by ment. But, within two months, circumstances
whom he was conducted after dark to the arose which proved the unreality of the friend-
harbour and put on board a vessel which con- ship, and awakened a still more irreconcilable
veyed him to Hieron at the mouth of the feud. Eudoxia aspired to semi-divine hon-
Euxine. The victory of his enemies seemed ours. A column of porphyry was erected in
complete. Theophilus entered the city in the lesser forum, in front of the church of St.
triumphal state and wreaked vengeance on Sophia, bearing aloft her silver statue for the
the bishop's partisans. The people, who adoration of the people. Its dedication in
had crowded to the churches to pour forth Sept. 403 was accompanied by boisterous
their lamentations, were forcibly dislodged, and licentious revelry. The noise of this un-
not without bloodshed. Furious at the loss seemly merriment penetrated the church and
of their revered teacher, they thronged the disturbed the sacred services. Chrysostom's
approaches to the imperial palace, clamour- holy indignation took fire, and he mounted the
;

CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN 165

dtubo and thundered forth a homily, embrac- removed : if possible, quietly


; if not, by
ing in its fierce invective all who had any share force. Assured by Antiochus and his com-
in these profane amusements, above all, the panions that Chrysostom had been actually
arrogant woman whose ambition was the cause condemned and had ceased to be a bishop,
of them. " Herodias," he was reported to Arcadius was persuaded to order his removal
Eudoxia to have exclaimed, " is once more (ih. p. 81). An imperial officer was sent to
maddening Herodias is once more dancing
; ;
desire the bishop to leave the church imme-
once more Herodias demands the head of John diately. Chrysostom respectfully but firmly
on a charger." All her former fury revived, refused. " He had received the church from
and she demanded of the emperor signal God, and he would not desert it. The em-
redress. Sacerdotal and imperial authority peror might expel him forcibly if he pleased.
stood confronted. One or other must yield His violence would be his excuse before God
(Socr. H. E. vi. i8 ; Soz. H. E. viii. 20 for leaving his post." When the time arrived
Theophan. p. 68 Zosim. v. 24). The enemies for the great baptismal function on Easter
;

of Chrysostom were not slow in reappear- Eve, when no fewer than 3,000 catechumens
ing. Acacius, Severian, Antiochus, with were expected, he calmly left his residence,
other members of the old cabal, hastened despite the orders of the emperor, and pro-
from their dioceses, and were soon in close ceeded to the cathedral. The imperial guards,
conference with their former confederates forbidden to use force, dared not interfere.
among the fashionable dames and worldly and The perplexed emperor summoned Acacius
frivolous clergy of the city. After repeated and Antiochus, and reproached them for their
deliberations they decided their policy. For advice. They replied that " Chrysostom, being
months past Chrysostom had been wearying no longer a bishop, was acting illegally in
the emperor with demands for a general administering the sacraments, and that they
"
council. Let such a council be called, care would take his deposition on their own heads
being taken to select its members discreetly, (ib. p. 82). The emperor, overjoyed at having
and let this fresh outburst of treasonable lan- the responsibility of the bishop's condemna-
guage be laid before it, and the result could not tion removed from himself, at once ordered
be doubtful. Theophilus, too wary to appear some guards to drag Chrysostom from the
again on the scene of his defeat, directed the cathedral as usurping functions no longer his,
machinations of the plotters. He put a new and reconduct him to his domestic prison. A
and powerful tool in their hands, in the 12th vast crowd was assembled in the church of
canon of the council of more than doubtful St. Sophia, to keep the vigil of the Resurrec-
orthodoxy held at Antioch, a.d. 341, pro- tion. The sacrament of baptism was being
nouncing the ipso facto deprivation of any administered to the long files of catechumens.
bishop who, after deposition, appealed to the Suddenly the din of arms broke the solemn
secular arm for restoration. The council met stillness. A body of soldiers, sword in hand,
towards the end of 403. On the succeed- burst in, and rushed, some to the baptisteries,
ing Christmas Day the emperor refused to some up the nave to the sacred bema and
communicate, according to custom, in the altar. The catechumens were driven from the
cathedral, on the ground of the doubtful font at the point of the sword. Many were
legality of Chrysostom's position (Socr., Soz. wounded, and, as an eye-witness records, " the
U.S.). This was justly regarded as ominous waters of regeneration were stained with
of Chrysostom's condemnation. Chrysostom, blood" (ib. p. 81). The baptisteries appropri-
supported by 42 bishops, maintained his usual ated to the females were invaded by the rude,
calm confidence. He continued to preach to licentious soldiers, who drove the women, half-
his people, and his sermons were characterized dressed, shrieking into the streets. Other
by more than common vigour and unction soldiers forced open the holy doors, and the
(Pallad. p. 81). The synod determined to sanctuary was profaned by the presence of
submit the decision to the emperor. An pagans, some of whom, it was whispered with
adroit demand was made in Chrysostom's horror, had dared to gaze on and even to
favour by Elpidius, the aged bp. of Laodicea, handle the Eucharistic elements. The clergy,
himself a confessor for the faith, that the clad in their sacred robes, were forcibly
chief promulgators of the canon of Antioch, ejected, and chased along the dark streets by
Acacius and Antiochus, should subscribe a the brutal soldiery. With holy courage the
declaration that they were of the same faith dispersed catechumens were reassembled by
as its original authors, who were mainly their clergy in the baths of Constantine,
Arians. The emperor was amused, and at once which, hastily blessed by the priests, became
agreed to the proposal. The two bishops sacred baptisteries. The candidates were again
caught in the trap became livid with rage approaching the laver of regeneration, when
(iiri TO TTfXiSvSTepov fierajiaKbvTes ti)v f]Lop<priv, they were once more forcibly dispersed by the
Pallad. p. 80), but were compelled to promise emissaries of Antiochus. The soldiers, rude
a compliance, which their astuteness had little barbarians from Thrace, executed their com-
difficulty in evading. The synod continued mission with indiscriminating ferocity. The
its protracted session. We have no record of ministering priest received a wound on the
any formal decision or sentence. None indeed head a blow on the arm caused the deacon
;

was necessary Chrysostom's violation of the to drop the cruet of sacred chrism.
;
The
Antiochene canon had deposed him : he was women were plundered of their robes and
no longer bp. of Constantinople. Meanwhile ornaments the clergy of their vestments, and
;

Easter was fast approaching. It would be the extemporized altar of its holy vessels. The
intolerable if the emperor were a second time fugitives were maltreated and beaten, and
shut out from his cathedral on a chief festival many dragged off to prison. The horrors of
of the church. Chrysostom must be at once that night remained indelibly imprinted on
;

166 CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN


the minds of those who witnessed them, and Asia Minor and Syria —endeavours which only
were spoken of long afterwards with shudder- deepened their attachment to him, and con-
ing. Similar scenes were enacted wherever firmed their resolution never to yield (Theod.
the scattered congregations endeavoured to H. E. V. 34).
reunite. For the greater part of Easter week All other help failmg, the persecuted party
Constantinople was like a city that had been appealed to the Western church as represented
stormed. Private dwellings were invaded to by its chief bishops. Letters were sent ad-
discover clandestine assemblies. The partisans dressed to Innocent, bp. of Rome, Venerius of
of Chrysostom — the Joannites, as they began Milan, and Chromatins of Aquileia, by Chry-
to be called— were thrown into prison on the sostom himself, by the 40 friendly bishops, aiid
slightest suspicion, and scourged and tortured by the clergy of Constantinople (Pallad. p. 10).
to compel them to implicate others (Chrys. Theophilus and his adherents sent counter-
Ep. ad Innocent, ap. Pallad. pp. 17-20 Pallad.
; representations {ib. p. 9). Innocent, without
pp. 82-88). For two months the timid Arcadius hesitation, pronounced the synod that had
could not be prevailed upon to sign the decree condemned Chrysostom irregular, and an-
for Chrysostom's banishment, and Chrysostom nulled his deposition because pronounced in
continued to reside in his palace, which was the absence of the accused, and wrote authori-
again guarded by successive detachments of tative letters to the chief parties. To Theo-
his adherents. His life was twice attempted philus he addressed sharp reproof, to the Con-
by assassins (Soz. H. E. viii. 21). stantinopolitan clergy fatherly sympathy, to

[e] Exile. At last, on June 5, a.d. 404, Chrysostom himself sympathy and encourage-
Arcadius was persuaded to sign the edict of ment {ib. pp. 23, 24; Soz. H. E. viii. 26), and
banishment. Chrysostom, after a final prayer he persuaded Honorius to write a letter to his
in the cathedral with some of his faithful brother Arcadius, urging the convocation of
bishops, prepared with calm submission to a general synod. This letter was conveyed
yield it prompt obedience. To guard against to Constantinople by a deputation of Western
a popular outbreak, he directed that his horse bishops. But Arcadius was not a free agent.
should be saddled and taken to the great west The bishops were not allowed admission to his
entrance, and after a tender farewell of his presence. The letters they bore were wrested
beloved Olympias and her attendant deacon- from them, the thumb of one of the bishops
esses, he passed out unobserved at a small being broken in the struggle. They were in-
postern and surrendered himself to the guard, sulted, maltreated, and sent home with every
who conveyed him, with two bishops who re- mark of contumely (Pallad. pp. 30-33 Soz.;

fused to desert him, to a vessel which instantly H. E. viii. 28).


started under cover of night for the Asiatic Chrysostom's place of exile, selected by
shore (Pallad. pp. 89-90). He had scarcely Eudoxia's hatred, was Cucusus, a lonely moun-
left the city when the church he had just tain village in the Tauric range, on the borders
quitted took fire ;the flames, which are said of Cilicia and Lesser Armenia. It had a most
to have broken out firstin the episcopal throne, inclement climate and was exposed to per-
caught the roof, and the conflagration spread petual inroads from Isaurian marauders.
to the senate house and adjacent public build- Chrysostom first learnt at Nicaea the place of
ings (ib. pp. 91-92 Socr. H. E. vi.
; 18 his future abode. His disappointment was
Soz. H. E. viii. 22 Zosim. v. 24).
; The sus- severe, but remonstrance was vain. Re-
picion, however unjustly entertained, that this freshing breezes from lake Ascanius invigora-
fire was due to Chrysostom's adherents, re- ted his worn constitution, and helped him to
solved that the church of their beloved teacher face the long and sultry journey. It was the
should never be possessed by his enemies, led season when the heat was most oppressive,
to a relentless persecution of the Joannites and his conductors were instructed to push on
under the semblance of a judicial investiga- with the utmost speed, without regard to his
tion. Innocent persons of every age and sex strength or comfort. Whatever kind con-
were put to the torture, in the vain hope that sideration could do to mitigate his sufferings
they would inculpate leading members of their was done by the officers in charge, Anatolius
party. The presbyter Tigrius and the young and Theodorus, who gladly executed for him
reader Eutropius expired under their torturer's all the duties of personal servants. On July 5
hands. Others barely escaped with their lives, Chrysostom left Nicaea to traverse the scorch-
maimed and mutilated (Soz. H. E. viii. 22-24). ing plains of Galatia and Cappadocia under a
The tender heart of Chrysostom was wrung midsummer sun. More dead than alive, he
upon hearing of the sufferings inflicted on his reached Caesarea. The bp. Pharetrius, an
friends, especially upon his dearly loved Olym- unworthy successor of the great Basil and a
pias. To the charge of incendiarism was added concealed enemy of Chrysostom (Pallad. p. 77),
that of contumacious resistance to the em- was greatly troubled at a halt being fixed at
peror's will, in refusing to hold communion Caesarea. His clergy were Joannites almost
with Arsacius and Atticus, who in succession to a man if he treated Chrysostom badly, he
:

had been thrust into Chrysostom's see. [Arsa- would offend them ;if well, he would incur
cius ; Atticus.] This was made a crime the more terrible wrath of the empress. So,
punishable with degradation from official rank, while sending complimentary messages, he
fine, and imprisonment. The clergy faithful carefully avoided an interview, and used all
to Chrysostom were deposed, and banished means to dispatch him from Caesarea as
with every circumstance of brutality. Some quickly as possible. This was not so easy, for
did not reach their place of banishment alive. a severe access of his habitual ague-fever had
The most persevering endeavours were made compelled Chrysostom to seek medical aid
to stamp out the adherents of the banished {Ep. 12). He was received with enthusiastic
prelate, not only in Constantinople but in affection by all ranks in the city. His lodging
CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN 167

was attacked by a body of fanatical monks, marauders, who made a nocturnal attack, and
probably the tools of Pharetrius, who threat- all but took the town (Ep. 135). With the
ened to burn it over his head unless he in- return of spring the Isaurians retired, and
stantly quitted it. Driven out by their fury, Chrysostom was able to descend to Cucusus
Chrysostom, suffering from a fresh attack of early in 406. After Arabissus this desolate
fever, found refuge in the country house of a littletown seemed a paradise. His greatest
wealthy lady near, named Seleucia. But the joy was in being nearer his friends and receiv-
threats of Pharetrius prevailed on Seleucia to ing their letters more regularly (Epp. 126, 127,
turn Chrysostom out of doors in the middle of 128). A third winter brought its usual hard-
the night, on the pretext that the barbarians ships, but Chrysostom was now somewhat
were at hand, and that he must seek safety by acclimatized and endured them without a re-
flight. The dangers of that terrible night, currence of illness (Epp. 4, 142). His wonderful
when the fugitives' torches were extinguished preservation from dangers hitherto, and the
for fear of the Isaurians and, his mule having manner in which his feeble health, instead of
fallen under the weight of his litter, he was sinking under the accumulated trials of his
taken up for dead and had to be dragged or banishment, became invigorated, awoke san-
rather carried along the precipitous mountain guine anticipations, and he now confidently
tracks, are graphically described in his letters anticipated his return from banishment and
to Olympias (Epp. 12, 14). He reached Cucu- his resumption of the care of his diocese (Epp.
sus towards the end of August. His reception I, 2, 4). But this was not to be. The unhappy
was of a nature to compensate for the fatigues Eudoxia had preceded the victim of her hatred
of the way and to mitigate the trials of exile to the grave, but left other equally relentless
{Ep. 14, § I ). He found agreeable occupation in enemies behind. Stung with disappointment
writing and receiving letters, and in social inter- that the rigours of Cucusus had failed to kill
course with congenial friends. Never even as him, and that from his mountain banishment
bp. of Constantinople did he exert a wider and he exercised a daily growing influence, they
more powerful influence. The East was almost obtained a rescript from Arcadius transferring
governed from a mountain village of Armenia. him first to Arabissus (Pallad. p. 96), and then
His advice was sought from all quarters. No to the small town of Pityus at the roots of
important ecclesiastical measure was under- Caucasus on the bleak N.E. shores of the
taken without consulting him. In the words Euxine. This was chosen as the most un-
of Gibbon, " the three years spent at Cucusus genial and inhospitable spot in the whole
were the most glorious of his life. From that empire, and therefore the most certain to rid
solitude Chrysostom, whose active mind was them quickly of his hated existence, even if,
invigorated by misfortunes, maintained a as proved to be the case, the long and toilsome
strict and frequent correspondence with the journey had not previously quenched the
most distant provinces ;exhorted the separ- feeble spark of life. This murderous purpose
ate congregations of his faithful adherents to was plainly evidenced by the selection of two
persevere in their allegiance urged the de-
; specially ferocious and brutal praetorian
struction of the temples of Phoenicia, and the guards to convey him there, with instructions
extirpation of heresy in the isle of Cyprus ;
to push forward with the most merciless haste,
extended his pastoral care to the missions of regardless of weather or the health of their
Persia and Scythia, and negotiated by his prisoner, a hint being privately given that they
ambassadors with the Roman pontiff and the might expect promotion if he died on the road
emperor Honorius." His voluminous corre- (ib. p. 98). The journey was to be made on
spondence, which all belongs to this period, foot. Towns where he might enjoy any ap-
shews how close a connexion he kept up with proach to comfort and have the refreshment of
the clergy and laity of his former diocese, and a warm bath were to be avoided. The neces-
how unremitting was his oversight of the in- sary halts, as few and brief as possible, were to
terests of his church (Soz. H. E. viii. 27). His be at squalid villages or in the unsheltered
chief cause of suffering was the variable clim- country. All letters were forbidden, the least
ate and the length and severity of the winter. communication with passers-by punished with
In the winter of 405 the intelligence that the brutal blows. In spite of some approach
Isaurian brigands were intending a coup de to consideration on the part of one of his
main on Cucusus drove nearly the whole of guards, the three months' journey between
the inhabitants from the town. Chrysostom I Cucusus and Comana must have been one long
joined the fugitives. The feeble old man slow martyrdom to the fever-stricken old man.
with a few faithful companions, including the His body was almost calcined by the sun, and,
presbyter Evethius and the aged deaconess to adopt Palladius's forcible image, resembled
Sabiniana, wandered from place to place, often a ripe apple ready to fall from the tree (ib.
passing the night in forests or ravines, pur- p. 99). On reaching Comana it was evident
sued by the terror of the Isaurians, until they that Chrysostom was entirely worn out. But
reached the mountain fort of Arabissus, some his pitiless guard hurried him through the
60 miles from Cucusus, in the castle of which town without a moment's halt. Five or six
place, " more a prison than a home," he spent miles outside stood a chapel over the tomb of
a winter of intense suffering, harassed by the the mart>T:ed bishop, Basiliscus. Here they
fear of famine and pestilence, unable to pro- halted for the night. In the morning Chry-
cure his usual medicines, and deprived of the sostom begged for a biief respite in vain but
;

comfort of his friends' letters, the roads being he had gone scarcely four miles when a violent
blocked with snow and beset by the Isaurians attack of fever compelled them to return to
who ravaged the whole district with fire and the chapel. Chrysostom was supported to the
sword (Epp. 15, 61, 69, 70, 127, 131). Once he altar, and, clothed in white baptismal robes, he
narrowly escaped falling into the hands of the distributed his own clothes to the bystanders,
;

168 CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN


partook of the blessed Eucharist, prayed a last hearts and affections of the holiest and most
prayer " for present needs," uttered his accus- exalted natures. His character is well summed
tomed doxology, " Glory be to God for all —
up by Dr. Newman " a bright, cheerful,
things," and having sealed it with an " Amen," gentle soul," his unrivalled charm " lying in
yielded up his soul to his Saviour, Sept. 14, his singleness of purpose, his fixed grasp of his
407, in the 60th year of his age and loth aim, his noble earnestness ; he was indeed a
of his episcopate, 3 years and a quarter man to make both friends and enemies, to
of which he had spent in exile. He was inspire affection and kindle resentment but ;

buried in the martyry by the side of Basiliscus his friends loved him with a love
'
stronger
'

{ib.pp. 99-101). Thirty-one years afterwards than death,' and his enemies hated him with
'

(Jan. 27, 438), when Theodosius II. was a hatred more burning than hell,' and it was
'

emperor, and Proclus, formerly a disciple of well to be so hated, if he was so beloved."


Chrysostom, was bp. of Constantinople, Chry- Chrysostom's extant works are more volumi-
sostom's body was taken from its grave near nous than those of any other Father, filling 13
Comana and translated with great pomp to his folios in the Benedictine ed. They may be

own episcopal city, and deposited hard by the roughly divided into I. Treatises II. Ex- ;

altar in the church of the Holy Apostles, the positions of Scripture, chiefly in the form of
place of sepulture of the imperial family and Homilies, but partly continuous Comment-
of the bishops of Constantinople, the young aries III. Homilies, (a) doctrinal, (b) occa-
;

emperor and his sister Pulcheria assisting at sional, (c) panegyrical, (d) general IV. ;

the ceremony, and asking the pardon of Heaven Letters ; V. Liturgy.


for the grievous wrong inflicted by their parents I. Treatises.— The earliest works we have
on the sainted bishop (Socr. H. E. vii. 45 ; from his pen are his letters ad Theodorum
Theod. H. E. v. 36 Evagr. H. E. iv. 31).
; Lapsurn, i. ii. {see supra), written while Chry-
The personal appearance of Chrysostom, as sostom was still resident at Antioch before
described by contemporary writers, though A.D. 372. To his early monastic life we may
dignified, was not imposing. His stature was assign the two books de Compunctione, ad-
diminutive (crw/idrioi') his limbs long, and so
; dressed respectively to Demetrius and Stele-
emaciated by early austerities and habitual chius. His three books in defence of the
self-denial that he compares himself to a spider monastic life (adversus Oppugnatores Vitae
{apaxvdodT)^, Ep. 4). His very lofty forehead, M onasticae) were called forth by the decree
furrowed with wrinkles, expanded widely at of Valens enforcing military service and civil
the summit, his head was bald " like that of functions on monks, a.d. 373. His short
Elisha," his eyes deeply set, but keen and treatise, Comparatio Regis et Monachi, belongs
piercing ; his cheeks pallid and withered his
;
to the same period. The three books de Pro-
chin pointed and covered with a short beard. videntid, written to console his friend Stagirius,
His habits were of the simplest, his personal the subject of an hysterical seizure then iden-
wants few and easily satisfied. The excessive tified with demoniacal possession, were prob-
austerities of his youth had ruined his digestive ably composed after his return to Antioch, i.e.
powers and he was unable to eat food except subsequently to 381. Before ordination to
in the smallest quantities and of the plainest the priesthood he composed two letters on the
kind. Outward display in dress, equipage, or superior happiness of a single life [ad Viduam
furniture was most distasteful to him. En- Juniorem) and his treatise on celibacy (de
amoured of the cloister, the life of the bishop Virginitate). His six books de Sacerdotio,
of the capital of the Eastern world, compelled justly ranked among his ablest, most instruc-
by his position to associate with persons of tive, and most eloquent writings, are among his
the highest rank and magnificence of life, earliest, and placed by Socrates (H.E. vi. 3) in
was intolerable. It is not surprising that the first days of his diaconate, c. 382. Its
he was thought morose and ungenial and maturity of thought and sobriety of tone pre-
was unpopular with the upper classes. His vent our fixing this work at a much earlier
strength of will, manly independence, and period. The treatises denouncing the custom
dauntless courage were united with an inflexi- for the clergy to have " spiritual sisters " re-
bility of purpose, a want of consideration for siding under the same roof with them {contra
the weaknesses of others, and an impatience eos qui subintrodiictas habent Regulares
;

at their inability to accept his high standard, foeminae viris cohabitare non debent), incorrect-
which rendered him harsh and unconciliatory. ly assigned by Socrates {ib.) to his diaconate,
Intolerant of evil in himself, he had little were written, Palladius tells us (p. 45), after he
tolerance for it in other men. His feebleness became bp. of Constantinople, c. 398. To his
of stomach produced an irritability of temper, exile belong the Nemo laeditur nisi a seipso,
which sometimes led to violent outbursts of and Ad eos qui
scandalizati sunt ob adversitates.
anger. He was accused of being arrogant and —
Expositions of Scripture.- It is as an ex-
II.
passionate. He was easily offended and too positor of Scripture that Chrysostom is most
ready to credit evil of those whom he dis- deservedly celebrated. His method of dealing
liked. Not mixing with the world himself, with the divine Word is characterized by the
he was too dependent on the reports of his sound grammatical and historical principles
friends, who, as in the case of Serapion, some- and the healthy common sense, introduced by
times abused his confidence to their own his tutor Diodorus, which mark the exegetical
purposes. But however austere and reserved school of Antioch. He seeks to discover not
to the worldly and luxurious, he was ever what the passage before him may be made to
loving and genial to his chosen associates. In mean, but what it was intended to mean not ;

their company his natural playfulness and what recondite lessons or truths may be forced
amiability was shewn, and perhaps few ever from it by mystical or allegorical interpreta-
exercised a more powerful influence over the tions, but what it was intended to convey
CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN 169

not what may be introduced into it. but what Cod. 174). The secret of their inferiority is
may be legitimately elicited from it. While that they were written at Constantinople in
regarding Scripture in the strictest sense as the the midst of the troubles arising from Gainas
word of God, no sentence of which must be and the Goths, when he had no time for studied
neglected, he is far from ignoring the human composition ;as also were the 24 homilies on
element in it, holding that though its writers Eph., the 15 on Phil., the 12 on Col., the 11 on
" spoke as they were moved by the Holy I. Thess., and the 5 on H. Thess., which hardly

Ghost," they retained their personal indi- reach Chrysostom's highest standard of excel-
viduality ;that their natural powers were lence. On the other hand, the 33 on Rom.,
quickened and illuminated, not superseded by which were certainly delivered at Antioch,
divine inspiration. He regards the Scriptures are among his most elaborate discourses. No-
as a connected whole, and avoiding the erro- where does he shew more argumentative power
neous plan of treating texts as isolated gnomes, or greater skill indeveloping his author's mean-
he seeks always to view a passage in relation ing. On I. Cor. we have 44 homilies, and 30
to its context, and to the general teaching of on II. Cor., preached at Antioch, of which the
Scripture. His expository works, being chief- former series " have ever been considered by
ly homiletic, do not give any continuous or devout men as among the most perfect speci-
systematic exegesis of the text. His primary mens of his mind and teaching " (Keble). The

object was a practical one- the conversion and commentary on Gal. is continuous, not in the
edification of his hearers —
and he frequently homiletical form, and a somewhat hasty work.
disappoints those who, looking for the meaning Montfaucon correctly assigns the 18 homilies
of a difficult passage, find instead a vehement on I. Tim., the 10 on II. Tim., and the 6 on
denunciation of some reigning vice or fashion- Tit. to his ministry at Antioch. From some
able folly, or an earnest exhortation to culti- marks of negligence the three on Philemon
vate some Christian grace or virtue (cf. Phot. have been thought to be extemporaneous
Cod. 174). addresses taken down by others. The 34 on
We are told by Suidas and Cassiodorus that Hebrews were delivered at Constantinople, and
Chrysostom wrote commentaries on the whole pub. from notes by Constantine, a presbyter,
of Holy Scripture, from the beginning to the after Chrysostom's death.
end. Among those extant are the 67 Homilies III. Homilies, {a) Doctrinal.- The chief of —
on preached at Antioch
Genesis, and 8 these are the 12 delivered against the Ano-
;

shorter and slighter, but more florid and moean form of Arianism, in the first year of his
rhetorical, sermons on topics from Gen. i. and presbyterate, at Antioch, a.d. 387. " They
ii.,delivered earlier in the same year. The are," writes Stephens, " among the finest of
ninth of these sermons, de Mutatione Nomi- his productions." Soon after he wrote the 8
num, does not belong to the series. The only against the Jews and Judaizing Christians
other homilies on the historical books of (contra Judaeos).
O.T. are five on the narrative of Hannah in (b) Occasional. —
Not a few of his grandest
I. Samuel, and three on David and Saul, as- flights of Christian oratory were called forth
signed by Tillemont to a.d. 387. He delivered by the events of the stirring times in which he
homilies on the whole book of Psalms, of which lived. The most remarkable is the series of
we have only those on Ps. iii.-xii., xliii.-xlix., 21 " On. the Statues" (ad Populum Antioch-
cviii.-cl. (inclusive), collected at an early enum de Statuis), for the circumstances of
period with great critical acumen. As early which see supra. Another class includes
as Photius the gaps indicated already existed. orations delivered at Constantinople on the
There is a homily on the opening verses of fall of Eutropius, on the insurrection of Gainas,
Ps. xli., which belongs to a different series. on the troubles connected with Severian, and
On Isaiah a continuous commentary was the noble and pathetic series connected with
composed by Chrysostom, but only the part his own deposition and exile. To these we
on cc. i.-viii. 11 is extant' There is a may add homilies delivered on the great
series of six homilies on the opening verses Church festivals.
of c. vi., in Oziam sen de Seraphinis. The (c) Panegyrical.' —
These deserve careful at-
fourth of these belongs to a different series. tention as illustrating " the passionate devo-
To these we may add a homily on Is. xlv. 7. tion to the memory of departed saints which
The only extant commentary on any part of was rapidly passing into actual adoration."
Jeremiah is one " on free will," Jer. x. 23. The earliest is probably that commemorating
Chrysostom's general views on prophecy are his venerated spiritual father Meletius, a.d.
given in two sermons de Prophetiarum Obscur- 386. The others are mostly devoted to the
itate, justly ranked by Montfaucon " inter eulogy of the bishops and martyrs of the
uobilissimas." The Synopsis Sacrae Scrip- church of Antioch, St. Ignatius, St. Eusta-
tiirae is an imperfect work, ending with Nahum. thius, St. Babylas, St. Pelagia, St. Domnina
His commentaries on N.T. commence with and her two daughters, and others, and were
qo on Matthew, delivered at Antioch. St. delivered at the martyria, or chapels erected
Thomas Aquinas is reported to have said that over their remains. Chrysostom delivered a
he would rather possess these homilies than be homily on the day of the commemoration of
the master of all Paris. There are none on the emperor Theodosius, and heaped extra-
Mark or Luke but we have 88 on St. John's vagant laudations on the empress Eudoxia
;

Gospel, also preached at Antioch. These are and on Arcadius during his ardent but short-
more doctrinal than hortatory or practical, lived friendship with them at the outset of his
being chiefly against the Anomoeans. The 55 episcopate.
homilies on Acts are among his feeblest works. (d) General.' —
Among these we include those
The style is inelegant, the language unrefined, belonging to Christian life generally, e.g. the
and the line of interpretation jejune (Phot. 9 de Poenitentia, 2 Catecheses ad Illuminandos,
;

170 CHRYSOSTOM, JOHN CLAUDIUS


those de Continentia, de Perfecta Caritate, de The best and most complete edition of Chry-
Consolatione Mortis, and numerous ones on sostom, as of most of the Christian Fathers, is
single texts or separate parables. the Benedictine, prepared by the celebrated
On his homilies, expository and practical, Bernard de Montfaucon, who devoted to it
Chrysostom's fame chiefly rests, and that de- more than twenty years of incessant toil and
servedly. He was in truth " the model of a of journeys to consult MSS. It was pub. at
preacher for a great capital. Clear, rather Paris, in 13 vols. fol. in 1718. The value of
than profound, his dogmatic is essentially this magnificent edition lies more in the his-
moulded up with his moral teaching. His
. . . torical and critical prefaces, and other literary
doctrines flow naturally from his subject or apparatus, than in the text, which is faulty.
from the passage of Scripture under discus- It has been reprinted at Venice in 1734 and
sion ;his illustrations are copious and happy ;
1755, and at Paris in 1834-1839. The most
his style free and fluent while he is an un-
;
practically useful edition is in the Patrologia
rivalled master in that rapid and forcible of the Abbe Migne, in 13 vols. 8vo. (Paris, 1863).
application of incidental occurrences which It is mainly a reprint of the Benedictine ed., but
gives such life and reality to eloquence. He enriched by a judicious use of the best modem
is at times, in the highest sense, dramatic in commentators. The chief early authorities
manner " (Milman, Hist, of Christ, iii. q). for the life of Chrysostom, besides his own
IV. Letters. —
The whole of Chrysostom's works, are the Dialogue of his contemporary
extant letters belong tohis banishment, written Palladius, bp. of Hellenopolis, which, however
on his road to Cucusus, during his residence valuable for its facts, deserves Gibbon's cen-
there, or in the fortress of Arabissus. The most sure as " a partial and passionate vindica-
important are 17 addressed to the deaconess tion," and the Ecclesiastical Histories of
Olympias, who shared his hopes and fears and Socrates (lib. vi.), Sozomen (lib. viii.), and
all his inmost feelings. The whole number is Theodoret (lib. v.), the Lexicon of Suidas (sub
242, written to every variety of friend men — voc. 'Iwdvvr}'!:), and the letters of Isidorus of
of rank, ladies, ecclesiastics of every grade, Pelusium (ii. Ep. 42). The biography by
bishops, presbyters, deacons and deaconesses, George of Alexandria is utterly worthless, be-
monks and missionaries, his old friends at ing more an historical romance than a memoir.
Antioch and Constantinople, and his more Of more modern works, it will suffice to name
recent acquaintances at Caesarea and other " the moderate Erasmus " (tom. iii. Ep. 1150),
halting-places on his journey —
and including the " patient and accurate " Tillemont (Mem.
every variety of subject now addressing re-
; Eccl. tom. ix.), and the diligent and dull Mont-
proof, warning, encouragement, or consola- faucon. The brilliant sketch of Gibbon (Decl.
tion to the members of his flock at Constanti- and Fall, c. xxxii.) must not be omitted.
nople, or their clergy now vigorously helping
; Neander's Life of St. Chrysostom is a work
forward the missionary work in Phoenicia, and of much value, more for the account of Chry-
soliciting funds for pious and beneficent works sostom's opinions and words than for the
now thanking his correspondents for their actual life. Amadee Thierry's biographical
letters or their gifts now complaining of articles in the Revue des Deux Mondes describe
;

their silence now urging the prosecution of Chrysostom's fall and exile most graphically,
;

the appeal made in his behalf to Innocent though with the licence of an artist. The
and the Western bishops, and expressing his most satisfactory biography is by Rev.
hope that through the prayers of his friends he W. R. W. Stephens (Lond. 1872), to which the
would be speedily given to them again and foregoing article is largely indebted. Trans-
;

the whole poured forth with the undoubting lations of several of his works are contained
confidence of a friend writing to friends of in the Po'it-Nicene Fathers, edited by Schaff
whom he is sure. We have in this correspond- and Wace. S.P.C.K. publishes cheaply St.
ence an index to his inner life such as we possess Chrys. On the Priesthood, by T. A. Moxon, and
of few great men. The letters are simply in- extracts from his writing in St. Chrysostom's
estimable in aiding us to understand and ap- Picture of his A ge and Picture of the Religion
preciate this great saint. In style, as Photius of his Age. [e.v.]
remarks, they are characterized by his usual Claudius (1), a.d. 41-54. The reign of this
brilliancy and clearness, and by great sweet- emperor has special interest in being that to
ness and persuasive power (Phot. Cod. 86). which we must refer the earliest distinct traces
V. Liturgical. —
It is impossible to decide of the origines of the church of Rome. Even
how much in the liturgies passing under the before his accession, the new faith may have
name of St. Chrysostom is really of his age. found its way there. "The " strangers of
There are very many editions of the liturgy, Rome, Jews and proselytes " (Acts ii. 10), who
no two of which, according to Cave (Hist. Lit. were at Jerusalem on the day of Pentecost, or
i- 305), present the same text and hardly any
; some of the " synagogue of the Libertines "
that do not off^er great discrepancies. It (Acts vi. 9), yielding to the arguments of
would be, of course, a fundamental error to Stephen, may have brought it thither. " An-
attribute the composition of a liturgy de novo to dronicus and Junia or Junias," who were " in
Chrysostom or any of the old Catholic Fathers. Christ " before the conversion of St. Paul
When a liturgy is called by the name of any (Rom. xvi. 7), and at Rome when that apostle
Father, all that is implied is that it was in use wrote to the church there, may have been
in the church to which that Father belonged, among those earlier converts. When Herod
and that it may have owed sonae corrections Antipas and Herodias came to court the
and improvements to him. The liturgy known favour of Caligula (Joseph. Antiq. xviii. 7)
in comparatively late times by the name of and gain for the former the title of king, they
Chrysostom has been from time immemorial must have had some in their train who had
that of the church of Constantinople. —
known perhaps those who had reported to
CLEMENS, FLAVIUS CLEMENS ROMANUS 171

him (Matt. xiv. i, 2) — the "


mighty works "
crime on which they were condemned was,
of the prophet of Nazareth. The frequent according to Dio Cassius, that of " Judaizing,"
visits ofHerod Agrippa would make events in from which in the popular mind Christianity
Judaea common topics at Rome. His pre- was hardly distinguishable. The religious
sence there when Claudius came to the throne charge was regarded by Suetonius as a most
(Joseph. Antiq. xix. 4, 5) may reasonably be
connected with the indulgence then extended of proof

trivial one, the object of suspicion rather than
" tenuissima ex suspicione " but —
to the Jews by that emperor {ib. xix. 5). The it was strengthened by a neglect of the ordi-
decree mentioned in Acts xviii. 2, and by nary usages of Roman social and political life,
Suetonius (Claudius, c. 25), indicates a change almost unavoidable by a Christian, which was
"
of policy, and the account of Suetonius prob- regarded as a " most contemptible indolence
ably tells the cause of the change, " Judaeos meriting severe animadversion. Clemens suf-
impulsore Chresto assidue tumultuantes Roma fered death his wife Domitilla was banished
;

expulit." * He does not give the date of to an island off the W. coast of Italy. [Do.mi-
the expulsion, but it was probably between TiANUS, (i).] Sueton. Domtt. § 15 Dio Cassius, ;

A.D. 43, when Agrippa left Rome, and a.d. Hist. Ixvii. 14 Tillem. tom. ii. p. 124; Merivale,
;

51, when St. Paul arrived at Corinth, and Romans tinder the Empire, vol. vii. c. Ixii. p. 383.
when the decree is mentioned as recent. The Lightfoot, Philippiauf, p. 22. [e.v.]
explanation turns upon the interpretation of Clemens Romanus. According to common
the words " impulsore Chresto." We know tradition, one of the first, if not the first, bp.
from Tertullian (Apol. c. 3) that " Christi- of Rome after the apostles, and certainly a
anus " was commonly pronounced " Chresti- leading member of that church towards the
anus " by those ignorant of its derivation and ; end of the ist cent.
that the name of Christ was for long similarly (i) Among the most authentic proofs of the
mispronounced we learn from Lactantius connexion of Clement with the Roman church
(" immutata litera Chrestum solent dicere," is the mention of his name in its liturgy. The
Ver. Sap. iv. 7). It seems legitimate, there- early Christians on the death of a bishop did
fore, to assume that the name " Christ" had not discontinue the mention of his name in
been heard in the disputings of Jews and their public prayers. Now the Roman Canon
Christians, and that the prefects and Roman of the Mass to this day, next after the names
population, ignorant of its true significance, of the apostles, recites the names of Linus,
conceived it to be the name of some local ring- Cletus, Clemens and there is some evidence
;

leader in a seditious riot. Many indications that the liturgy contained the same names
in Acts and Romans imply a considerable in the same order as early as the 2nd cent;
growth of the Christian community before the Probably, then, this commemoration dates
accession of Nero. from Clement's own time.
It is obvious further, (i) that the expulsion (2) An independent proof that Clement
of Christians who had been Jews or proselytes held high position in the church of Rome is
would leave a certain proportion of purely afforded by the Shepherd of Hermas, a work
Gentile Christians whom the edict would not not later than the episcopate of Pius (a.d.
touch ;and (2) that those who returned would I4r-i56), the writer of which claims to have
naturally settle, not in the Jewish trans- been contemporary w th Clement. He repre-
Tiberine quarter of the city, but in some safer sents himself as commissioned to write for
locality, and that thus the church at Rome, Clement the book of his Visions in order that
at or soon after the death of Claudius, would Clement might send it to foreign cities, that
gradually become more and more free from being his function while Hermas himself was
;

Jewish or Judaizing influences. (On other to read the Vision at Rome with the elders
points connected with the rise and progress of who presided over the church. Thus Clement
Christianity at Rome under Claudius see is recognized as the organ by which the church
" Aquila and Priscilla," and the " Proto- of Rome communicated with foreign churches
;

mart\T Stephen," in the writer's Biblical but the passage does not decide whether or
Studies.) [e.h.p.] not Clement was superior to other presbyters
Clemens (1 ), FlaviUS, son of Sabinus. brother in the domestic government of the church.
of the emperor Vespasian, and therefore first
(3) Next in antiquity among the notices of
cousin to Domitian, whose niece Flavia Domi- Clement is the general ascription to him of the
tilla was his wife. Domitian regarded his Epistle to the Church of Corinth, commonly
kinsman with great favour, and placed his two known as Clement's first epistle. This is
sons, whom he caused to be named after him- written in the name of the church of Rome,
self and his brother, Vespasianus and Domi- and neither in the address nor in the body of
tianus. under the tuition of Quintilian as the letter contains Clement's name, yet he
his destined successors. Flavius Clemens was seems to have been from the first everywhere
consul in a.d. 95, and had only just resigned recognized as its author. We may not un-
the office when he and his wife Domitilla were reasonably infer from the passage just cited
suddenly arrested and convicted on the charge from Hermas that the letter was even then
of " atheism," by which there is no reasonable celebrated. About a.d. 170 it is expressly
doubt that Christianity is intended. The mentioned by Dionj'sius, bp. of Corinth, who,
acknowledging another letter -vvritten from the
uMb
* Dio Cassiufe (Ix.p. 669) speaks of Claudius as not church of Rome to the church of Corinth by
expellmg the Jews, but only forbidding them to as-
semble. Probably this was an earlier measure not their then bp. Soter, states that their former
found sufficiently effective. The expulsion of the letter written by Clement was still read from
* Mathematici" about the same time (Tacitus, time to time in their Sunday assemblies.
/Inn. xii. 52) implies a general alarm as to the spread Eusebius (H. E. iii. 16) speaks of this public
of " Eastern superstitions," reading of Clement's epistle as the ancient
;

172 CLEMENS ROMANUS CLEMENS ROMANUS


custom of very many churches down to his that Clement, after having been ordained by
own time. In the same place (and in H. E. Peter, withdrew from his office and did not
iv. 22) he reports that Hegesippus. whose resume it until after the death of Linus and
historical work was written in the episcopate Cletus. Amore modern attempt to reconcile
next after Soter's, and who had previously these accounts is Cave's hypothesis that Linus
visited both Rome and Corinth, gives parti- and after him Cletus had been appointed by
culars concerning the epistle of Clement, and Roman church of Gen-
Paul to preside over a
concerning the dissensions in the Corinthian tile Christians Clement by Peter over a
;

church which had given rise to it. The church of Jewish believers, and that ultimately
epistle is cited as Clement's by Irenaeus {adv. Clement was bishop over the whole Roman
Haer. iii. 3), several times by Clement of church. Still later it has been argued that
Alex., who in one place gives his namesake the uncertainty of order may mean that during
the title of Apostle (Strom, i. 7, iv. 17, v. 12, the ist cent, there was no bishop in the church
vi. 8) by Origen (de Princip. ii. 3, in Ezech. of Rome, and that the names of three of the
;

8, in Joan. i. 29) and in fact on this subject leading presbyters have been handed down by
;

the testimony of antiquity is unanimous. A some in one order, by others in another. The
letter which did not bear Clement's name, and authorities, however, which differ from the
which merely purported to come from the account of Irenaeus, ultimately reduce them-
church of Rome, could scarcely have been selves to two. Perhaps the parent of the rest
generally known as Clement's, if Clement had isthe letter of Clement to James [Clementine
not been known at the time as holding the Literature] giving an account of Clement's
chief position in the church of Rome. -
ordination by Peter for it seems to have
;

(4) Last among those notices of Clement been plainly the acceptance of this ordination
which may be relied on as historical, we place as historical which inspired the desire to cor-
'^
the statement of Irenaeus [I.e.) that Clement rect a list of bishops which placed Clement at
was third bp. of Rome after the apostles, his a distance of three from Peter. The other
account being that the apostles Peter and Paul, authority is the Chronicle of Hippolytus,
having founded and built up that church, pub. A.D. 235 (see Chronicon Canisianum
committed the charge of it to Linus that
; in D. C. B. 4- vol. ed.), and the memoir of
Linus was succeeded by Anencletus, and he Mommsen there cited), for it has been satis-
by Clement. This order is adopted by Euse- factorily shewn that the earlier part of the
bius, by Jerome in his Chronicle, and by Liberian catalogue is derived from the list of
Eastern chronologers generally. Roman bishops in this work. The confusion
A
different order of placing tliese bishops can of later writers arises from attempts to re-
also,however, lay claim to high antiquity. The concile conflicting authorities, all of which
ancient catalogue known as the Liberian, be- seemed deserving of confidence viz. (i) the
:

cause ending with the episcopate of Liberius, list of Irenaeus, and probably of Hegesippus,
gives the order and duration of the first Roman giving merely a succession of Roman bishops ;

episcopates Peter 25 years, i month, 9


:
(2) the list of Hippolytus giving a succession
days Linus 12 years, 4 months, 12 days
; in somewhat different order and also the years
Clemens 9 years, 11 months, 12 days ; Cletus of the duration of the episcopates and (3) the ;

6 years, 2 months, 10 days ; Anacletus 12 letter to James relating the ordination of


years, 10 months, 3 days : thus Anacletus, Clement by Peter. The main question, then,
who in the earlier list comes before Clement, is, which is more entitled to confidence, the
isreplaced by two bishops, Cletus and Ana- order of Irenaeus or of Hippolytus ? and we
cletus,who come after him and this account
; have no hesitation in accepting the former.
isrepeated in other derived catalogues. Ire- First, because it is distinctly the more an-
naeus himself is not consistent in reckoning cient secondly, because if the earlier tradi-
;

the Rornan bishops. [Cerdc] The order, tion had not placed the undistinguished name
Peter, Linus, Clemens, is adopted by Augus- Cletus before the well-known Clement, no later
tine [Ep. 53 ad Generostim) and by Optatus of writer would have reversed its order thirdly, ;

Milevis {de Schism. Donatist. ii. 2). Tertul- because of the testimony of the liturgy.
lian {de Praescrip. c. 32) states that the church Hippolytus being apparently the first scientific
of Rome held Clement to have been ordained chronologer in the Roman church, his author-
by Peter ; and Jerome {Cat. Scr. Ecc. 15), ity there naturally ranked very high, and his
while adopting the order of Irenaeus, mentions order of the succession seems to have been
that most Latins then counted Clement to generally accepted in the West for a consider-
have been second after Peter, and himself able time. Any commemoration, therefore,
seems to adopt this reckoning in his commen- introduced into the liturgy after his time
tary on Isaiah (c. 52). The Apostolic Constitu- would have followed his order, Linus, Clemens,
tions (vii. 46) represent Linus to have been Cletus, or, if of very late introduction, would
first ordained by Paul, and afterwards, on the have left out the obscure name Cletus alto-
death of Linus, Clement by Peter. Epipha- gether. We
conclude, then, that the commem-
nius {Haer. xxvii. 6) suggests that Linus and oration in the order, Linus, Cletus, Clemens,
Cletus held office during the lifetime of Peter had been introduced before the time of Hip-
and Paul, who, on their necessary absence from polytus, and was by then so firmly established
Rome for apostolic journeys, commended the that even the contradictory result arrived at
charge of the church to others. This solution by Hippolytus (because he accepted as histor-
is adopted by Rufinus in the preface to his ically true the ordination of Clement by Peter
translation of the Recognitions. Epiphanius as related in the Ep. to James) could not alter
has an alternative solution, founded on a it. The Recognitions are cited by Origen,
conjecture which he tries to support by a re- the contemporary of Hippolytus and the ;

ference to a passage in Clement's epistle, viz. account which their preface gives of Clement's
CLEMENS ROMANUS CLEMENS ROMANUS 173

ordination seems to have been ful]\' believed expired, was put to death on a charge of
by the Roman church. The death of Clement atheism, while his wife Domitilla, also a
and the consequent accession of Evaristus is member of the emperor's family, was banished.
dated by Eusebius in his Chronicle a.d. 95, The language is such as heathen writers might
and in his Church History the third year of naturally use to describe a persecution of
Trajan, a.d. 100. According to the chrono- Christians ; but Eusebius (//. E. iii. 13) ex-
logy of the Liberian Catalogue, the accession pressly claims one Domitilla, a niece of the
of Evaristus is dated a.d. 95. Now no one consul's, as a sufferer for Christ; and [Chron.
dates the death of Peter later than the per- sub anno 95) cites the heathen historian Brut-
secution of Nero, a.d. 67. If, therefore, tius as stating that several Christians suffered
Clement was ordained by Peter, and if we martyrdom at this time. If, then, the consul
retain the order of Irenaeus, Clement had an Clement was a Christian martyr, his rank
episcopate of about 30 years, a length far would give him during his life a foremost posi-
greater than any tradition suggests. Hippo- tion in the Roman church. It is natural to
lytus, probably following the then received think that the writer of the epistle may have
account of the length of Clement's episcopate, been either the consul or a member of his
has placed it a.d. 67-76 and, seeing the above
; family. Yet if so, the traditions of the Roman
difficulty, has filled the space between Clement church must have been singularly defective.
and Evaristus by transposing Cletus and, as No writer before Rufinus speaks of bp. Clement
the gap seemed too large to be filled by one as a martyr ; nor does any ancient writer in
episcopate, by counting as distinct the Cletus any way connect him with the consul. In the
of the liturgy and the Anacletus of the earlier Recognitions Clement is represented as a rela-
catalogue. Apparently it was Hippolytus tion of the emperor ; not, however, of Domi-
who devised the theory stated in the Apostolic tian, but of Tiberius. A fabulous account
Constitutions, that Linus held the bishopric of Clement's martvTrdom, probably of no ear-
during the lifetime of Peter for this seems to
; lier origin than the 9th cent., tells how Clement
be the interpretation of the dates assigned in was first banished to the Crimea, worked there
the Liberian Catalogue, Peter 30-55, Linus such miracles as converted the whole district,
55-67. But the whole ground of these specula- and was thereupon by Trajan's order cast into
tions is removed if we reject the tale of Clem- the sea with an anchor round his neck, an
ent's ordination by Peter ;if for no other event followed by new prodigies.
reason, on account of the chronological con- The only genuine work of Clement is the
fusion which it causes. Thus we retain the Ep. to the Corinthians already mentioned.
order of Irenaeus, accounting that of Hippo- Its main object is to restore harmony to the
lytus as an arbitrary transposition to meet a Corinthian church, which had been disturbed
chronological difficulty. The time that we are by questions apparently concerning discipline
thus led to assign to the activity of Clement, rather than doctrine. The bulk of the letter
viz. the end of Domitian's reign, coincides is taken up in enforcing the duties of meekness,
with that which Eusebius, apparently on the humility, submission to lawful authority, and
authority of Hegesippus, assigns to Clement's but little attempt is made at the refutation of
epistle, and with that which an examination doctrinal error. Some pains, it is true, are
of the letter itself suggests (see below). taken to establish the doctrine of the Resurrec-
The result thus arrived at casts great doubt tion ; but this subject is not connected by the
on the identification of the Roman Clement writer with the disputes, and so much use is
with the Clement named Phil. iv. 3. This made of Paul's Ep. to the Corinthians that we
identification is unhesitatingly made by Origen cannot lay much stress on the fact that one
[in Joann. i. 29) and a host of later writers. of the topics of that epistle is fully treated.
Irenaeus also may have had this passage in The dissensions are said to have been caused
mind when he speaks of Clement as a hearer by the arrogance of a few self-willed persons
of the apostles, though probably he was who led a revolt against the authority of the
principally influenced by the work which presbyters. Their pride probably rested on
afterwards grew into the Recognitions. But their possession of spiritual gifts, and perhaps
though it is not actually impossible that the on the chastity which they practised. Though
Clement who held a leading position in the pains are taken to shew the necessity of a
church of Philippi during Paul's imprisonment distinction of orders, we cannot infer that this
might thirty years afterwards have presided was really questioned by the revolters for the
;

over the church of Rome, yet the difference of charge against them, that they had unwarrant-
time and place deprives of all likelihood an ably deposed from the office of presbyter
identification merely based upon a verv com- certain who had filled it blamelessly, implies
mon name. Lightfoot has remarked that that the office continued to be recognized by
Tacitus, for instance, mentions five Clements them. But this unauthorized deposition
(Ann. i. 23, ii. 39, xv. 73 ;Hist. i. 86, iv. 68). naturally led to a schism, and representations
Far more plausibly it has been proposed to made at Rome by some of the persons ill-
identify the author of the epistle with another treated may have led to the letter of Clement.
Clement, who was almost certainly at the time It is just possible that we can name one of
a distinguished member of the Roman church. these persons. At the end of the letter a wish
We learn from Suetonius (Domit. 15) and from is expressed that the messengers of the Roman
Dio Cassius, Ixvii. 14, that in 95, the very year church, Ephebus and Bito, with Fortunatus
fixed by some for the death of bp. Clement, also, might be sent back speedily with tidings
death or banishment was inflicted by Domitian of restored harmony. The form of expression
on several persons addicted to Jewish customs, distinguishing Fortunatus from the Roman
and amongst them Flavins Clemens, a relation delegates favours the supposition that he was
of his own, whose consulship had but just a Corinthian, and as Clement urges ou those
174 CLEMENS ROMANUS CLEMENS ROMANUS
who had been the cause of dissension to with- Gentile, the arguments are not absolutely
draw for peace' sake, it is possible that For- decisive ;but it seems more conceivable that
tunatus might have so withdrawn and found a Hellenistic Jew resident at Rome could have
a welcome at Rome. Another conjecture acquired the knowledge of Roman history and
identifies him with the Fortunatus mentioned heathen literature exhibited in the epistle,
in St. Paul's Ep. to the Corinthians. than that one not familiar from his childhood
However precarious this identification may with the O.T. could possess so intimate an
be, internal evidence shews that the epistle is acquaintance with it. This consideration, of
not so far from apostolic times as to make it course, bears on the question whether Flavins
impossible. None of the apostles are spoken Clemens could have written the letter.
of as living, but the deaths of Peter and Paul, The letter does not yield any support to the
described as men of their own generation, are theory of ist cent, disputes between a Pauline
referred to as then recent, and some of the and an anti-Pauline party in the church.
presbyters appointed by the apostles are No such disputes appear in the dissensions at
spoken of as still surviving. The early date Corinth ; and at Rome the Gentile and Jewish
thus indicated is confirmed by the absence of sections of the church seem in Clement's time
allusion to controversial topics of the 2nd to be completely fused. The obligation on
cent., and by the immaturity of doctrinal de- Gentiles to observe the Mosaic law does not
velopment on certain points. Thus " bishop " seem a matter of concern. The whole Chris-
and " presbyter " are, as in N.T., used con- tian community is regarded as the inheritor of
vertibly, and there is no trace that in the the promises to the Jewish people. Clement
church of Corinth one presbyter had any very holds both SS. Peter and Paul in the highest
pronounced authority over the rest. The de- (and equal) honour.
position of certain presbyters is not spoken of The epistle was known until 1875 only
as usurpation of the authority of any single through a single MS., the great Alexandrian
person, but of that of the whole body of MS. brought to England in 1628, of which an
presbyters. Again, to the writer the " Scrip- account is given in all works on the criticism
tures " are the books of the O.T. ;these he of the N.T. One leaf, containing about the
cites most copiously and uses to enforce his tenth part of the whole letter, has been lost.
arguments. He expressly mentions St. Paul's In this Greek Bible of the 5th cent, the two
Ep. to the Corinthians and twice reminds his
; letters of Clement to the Corinthians are books
hearers of words of our Lord. The way in enumerated among N.T., not with the apostolic
which he uses the quotations implies the exist- epistles, but after the Apocalypse. Hence the
ence of written records recognized by both ecclesiastical use of Clement's letter had prob-
parties. Besides these, without any formal ablynot ceased when this MS. wascopied. The
citation he makes unmistakable use of other ep. was first ed. by Patrick Young (Oxf. 1633),
N.T. books, chiefly of Heb., but also of Rom. and often since, among the most important edd.
and other Pauline, including the Pastoral, being Cotelier's in his Apostolic Fathers (Paris,
epistles, Acts, James, and I. Peter. Still, 1672); Jacobson's; Hilgenfeld's in his N.T.
their authority is not appealed to in the same extra Canonem Receptiim Lightfoot's (Camb.
;

manner as is that of the O.T. It may be 1869, and in his great ed. of the Apostolic
mentioned here that Clement's epistle contains Fathers, 1890); Tischendorf's (Leipz. 1873);
the earliest recognition of the Book of Judith. and Gebhardt and Harnack's (Leipz. 1875). A
He quotes also from O.T. apocryphal books or photograph of this portion of the MS. was
interpolations not now extant. pub. by Sir. F. Madden in 1856. An Eng.
To fix more closely the date of the epistle, trans, of the ep. (and of those on Virginity) is
the principal fact available is, that in the in the Lib. of Ante-Nicene Fathers.
opening an apology is made that the church of An entirely new authority for the text of
Rome had not been able to give earlier atten- the epistle was gained by the discovery in the
tion to the Corinthian disputes, owing to the library of the Holy Sepulchre at Fanari, in
sudden and repeated calamities which had Constantinople, of a MS. containing an unmuti-
befallen it. It is generally agreed that this lated text of the two epistles ascribed to
must refer to the persecution under either Clement. " The new authority was announced,
Nero or Domitian. A date about midway and first used in establishing the text, in a very
between these is that to which the phenomena careful and able ed. of the epp. by Bryennius,
of the epistle would have inclined us ; but metropolitan of Serrae, pub. in Constantinople
having to choose between these two we have at the end of 1875. The MS., which is
no hesitation in preferring the latter. The cursive and dated a.d. 1056, is contained in a
main argument in favour of the earlier date, small octavo volume, 7 J inches by 6, which
that the temple service is spoken of as being has, besides the Epp. of Clement, Chrysos-
still offered, is satisfactorily met by the occur- tom's synopsis of the O.T., the Ep. of
rence of a quite similar use of the present tense Barnabas, the Teaching of the Twelve Apos-
in Josephus. Indeed the passage, carefully tles (occupying in the MS. less space by one-
considered, suggests the opposite inference ;
fourth than the second Ep. of Clement), and
for Clement would Judaize to an extent of a collection of Ignatian epistles. It gives a
which there is no sign elsewhere in the epistle, very good text of the Clementine letters, in-
if, in case the temple rites were being still dependent of the Alexandrian MS., but, on the
celebrated, he were to speak of them as the whole, in tolerably close agreement with it,
appointed and acceptable way of serving God. even in passages where the best critics had
All the other notes of time are difficult to * Still later a Syriac MS. purchased for the Univer-
reconcile with a date so close to the apostles sity of Cambridge was found to contain a trans, of
as the reign of Nero. these two epistles. This has been ed. with notes and a
As to whether the writer was a Jew or a facsim'le plate by R. I^. Bensley (Camb. Univ. Press),
;

CLEMENS ROMANUS CLEMENS ROMANUS 175

suspected error. Besides filling up small thians. It is so described in the later MS. It
lacunae in the text of the older MS., it supplies isnot mentioned by any writer before Eusebius,
the contents of the entire leaf which had been and the language used by some of them is
lost. This part contains a passage quoted by inconsistent with their having accepted it.
Basil, but not another quoted by Pseudo- Eusebius mentions it as a second letter ascribed
Justin, confirmed in some degree by Ireaaeus, to Clement, but not, like the former, used by
which had been referred to this place (see the older writers, and he only speaks of one as
Lightfoot, p. i66). E.xcept for trifling omis- the acknowledged epistle of Clement. The two
sions we must have the letter now as complete epistles are placed among the books of the
as it was originally in the Alexandrian MS. N.T., in the 8th book of the Apostolic Consti-
For Harnack, on counting the letters in the tutions, which probably belongs to the 6th
recovered portion, found that they amounted cent. The second epistle is first expressly cited
almost exactly to the average contents of a as to the Corinthians by Severus of Antioch
leaf of the older MS. Lightfoot has pointed early in the same cent. Internal evidence,
out that by a small change in the text of Ps.- though adverse to Clementine authorship,
Justin, his reference is satisfied by a passage assigns to the work a date not later than the 2nd
in the newly discovered conclusion of the cent., and probably the first half of it. The
second epistle. The new portion of the first writer is distinctly a Gentile, and contrasts
principally consists of a prayer, possibly himself and his readers with the Jewish nation
founded on the liturgical use of the Roman in a manner quite unlike the genuine Clement
church. What has been said in the beginning and his quotations are not, like Clement's,
of the letter as to the calamities under which almost exclusively from O.T. ; the gospel
that church had suffered is illustrated by some history is largely cited, and once under the
of the petitions, and prayer is made for their name of Scripture. Many of the quotations,
earthly rulers and that they themselves might however, differ from our canonical gospels, and
submit to them, recognizing the honour given since one of them agrees with a passage re-
them by God, and not opposing His will. ferred by Clement of Alexandria to the gospel
Very noticeable in this new pait of the letter of the Egyptians, this was probably the source
is the tone of authority used in making an of other quotations also. The epistle would
unsolicited interference with the affairs of seem from this to be earlier than the close of
another church. " If any disobey the words the 2nd cent., at which time our four gospels
spoken by God through us, let them know that were in a position of exclusive authority. The
they will entangle themselves in transgression, controversies with which the writer deals are
and no small danger, but we shall be clear those of the early part of the 2nd cent. In
from this sin." " You will cause us joy and language suggested by the Ep. to the
exultation if, obeying the things written by us Ephesians, the spiritual church is described as
through the Holy Spirit, you cut out the law- created before the sun and moon, as the female
less passion of your jealousy according to the of whom Christ is the male, the body of which
intercession which we have made for peace and he is the soul. It seems likely that a work
concord in this letter. But we have sent using such language had gained its acceptance
faithful and discreet men who have walked with the church before Gnostic theories con-
from youth to old age unblanieably amongst us, cerning the Aeons Christus and Ecclesia had
who shall be witnesses between us and you. brought discredit upon such speculations. The
This have we done that you may know that doctrine of the pre-existence of the church is,
all our care has been and is that you may as Harnack noted, one of several points of
speedily be at peace." It remains open for contact between this work and the Shepherd
controversy how far the expressions quoted of Her mas, making it probable that both
indicate official superiority of the Roman emanate from the same age and the same
church, or only the writer's conviction of the circle. We
therefore refer the place of com-
goodness of their cause. We may add that position to Rome, notwithstanding an appar-
the epithet applied by Irenaeus to the epistle ent reference to the Isthmian games which
iKavwrdTr) proves to have been suggested by a favours a connexion with Corinth. The de-
phrase in the letter itself, iKafCis eirecTTeiXanev. scription of the work as an Ep. to the
Lightfoot gives references to a succession of Corinthians, never strongly supported by ex-
writers who have quoted the epistle. Poly- ternal evidence, is disproved by the newly
carp, though not formally quoting Clement's discovered conclusion, whence it clearly ap-
epistle, gives in several passages clear proof of pears that the work is, as Dodwell and others
acquaintance with it. A passage in Ignatius's had supposed, no epistle, but a homily. It
epistle to Polycarp, c. 5, may also be set down professes, and there seems no reason to doubt
as derived from Clement, but other parallels it, to have been composed to be publicly read
collected by Hilgenfeld are extremely doubt- in church, and therefore the writer's position
ful. The epistle does not seem to have been in the church was one which would secure that
translated into Latin, and was consequently use of his work. But he does not claim any
little known in the West. position of superiority, and the foremost place
For some of the spurious works ascribed to in ruling and teaching the church is attributed
Clement see Clementine Literature. to the body of presbyters. He nowhere

The Second Epistle to the Corinthians. This claims to be Clement. But it is not strange
letter also formed part of the Alexandrian MS., that an anonymous, but undoubtedly early
but its conclusion had been lost by mutilation. document of the Roman church should come
We now have it complete in the edition of to be ascribed to the universally acknow-
Bryennius. In the list of contents of the older ledged author of the earliest document of that
MS. it is marked as Clement's second epistle, church ;nor that when both had come to be
but not expressly described as to the Corin- received as Clement's, the second should come
176 CLEMENS ROMANUS CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA
to be regarded as, like the first, an epistle to to the middle of the 2nd cent., but their argu-
the Corinthians. ments hardly suffice to exclude a somewhat

The Two Epistles on Virginity. These are later date.
extant only in Syriac, and only in a single MS. The Epistles to James our Lord's Brother. In —
purchased at Aleppo c. a.d. 1750, for Wetstein. the article Clementine Literature is given
He had commissioned a copy of the Philox- an account of the letter to James by Clement,
enian version of the N.T. to be bought, and this which relates how Peter, in immediate anti-
MS. proved to be only a copy of the well- cipation of death, ordained Clement as his
known Peshito. But the disappointment was successor,and gave him charge concerning his
compensated by the unexpected discovery of ministry. After the trans, of this letter by
these letters, till then absolutely unknown in Rufinus, some Latin writer added a second,
the West. After the Ep. to the Hebrews, the giving instruction as to the administration of
last in the Peshitta canon, the scribe adds a the Eucharist and church discipline. These two
doxology, and a note with personal details by letters had considerable currency in the West.
which we can date the MS. a.d. 1470, and then In the forged decretals both were much enlarged,
proceeds, " We subjoin to the epistles of Paul and 3 new letters purporting to be Clement's
those epistles of the apostles, which are not added. James is in the original Clementines
found in all the copies," on which follow \\. the head of the church, but in the later epistle
Peter, H., HI. John, and Jude, from the Phi- receives instruction and commands from Peter's
loxenian version, and then, without any break, successor Clement. There must have been yet
these letters, with the titles : " The first other letters ascribed to Clement in the East
epistle of the blessed Clement, the disciple of if there be no error in the MS. of Leontius (Mai,
Peter the apostle," and " The second epistle Script. Vet. Nov. Coll. vii. 84), who cites a pas-
^
of the same Clement." The MS. is now pre- sage not elsewhere extant as from the ninth
served in the library of the Seminary of the letter of Clement. Discourses concerning
Remonstrants at Amsterdam. The letters Providence and the righteous judgment of
were published, as an appendix to his Greek God are cited by Anastasius of Antioch ;

Testament, by Wetstein, who also defended and a i3th-cent. writer (Spicilegium Ache-
their authenticity. The last editor is Beelen riamnn, viii. 382) reports having seen in a
(Louvain, 1856). The letters, though now only Saracen MS. a book of Revelations of Peter,
extant in Syriac, are proved by their Graecisms compiled by Clement. The highest, and pro-
to be a translation from the Greek, and bably the final, authority on St. Clement of
by the existence of a fragment containing an Rome is now the great work of Bp. Lightfoot,
apparently different Syriac translation of one forming, in 2 parts, pub. 1890, vol. i. of his
passage in them. This fragment is contained ed. of the A postolic Fathers. See also Harnack,
in a MS. bearing the date a.d. 562. The Chronol. der Altchr. Lit., 1897, pp. 251 ff.,
earliest writer who quotes these letters is Epi- an ed. by A. Jacobson of Clement's
438 ff. ;

phanius. In a passage, which until the dis- works in 2 vols, in Apost. Patr. (Clar. Press) ;

covery of the Syriac letters had been felt as an Eng. trans, of the Epistle oj Clement,
perplexing, he describes Clement as "in the by J. A. F. Gregg (S.P.C.K.). [g.s.]
encyclical letters which he wrote, and which
are read in the holy churches," having taught
Clement of Alexandria, i. Life. His full —
name, Titus Flavins Clemens, is given by
virginity, and praised Elias and David and
Eusebius [H. E. vi. 13) and Photius (Cod. in)
Samson, and all the prophets. The letters to
in the title of the Stromateis [Tirov <I>\c:ii.oi'
the Corinthians cannot be described as ency-
KXTj.uej-ros [Photius adds wpiGpvripov We^av- '

clical; and the topics specified are not treated


Spei'as] T(bv KaTa.TT]v aXrjdrj (pikoaoipLav yvcoffriKiiv
of in them, while they are dwelt on in the
Syriac letters. St. Jerome, though in his arpu/xareis).
vjro/j,vrjfxdT(i)v The remarkable
catalogue of ecclesiastical writers he follows coincidence of the name with that of the
Eusebius in mentioning only the two letters nephew Vespasian and consul in 95 cannot
of
to the Corinthians as ascribed to Clement, yet have been accidental, but we have no direct
must be understood as referring to the letters evidence of Clement's connexion with the
on virginity in his treatise against Jovinian imperial Flavian family. Perhaps he was
where he speaks of Clement as composing descended from a freedman of the consul ;

almost his entire discourse concerning the his wide and varied learning indicates that
purity of virginity. He may have become he had received a liberal education, and so
acquainted with these letters during his resi- far suggests that his parents occupied a good
dence in Palestine. The presumption against social position. The place of his birth is not
their genuineness, arising from the absence of certainly known. Epiphanius, the earliest
notice of them by Eusebius and every other authority on the question, observes that two
writer anterior to Epiphanius, and from the opinions were held in his time, " some saying
limited circulation which they appear ever to that he was an Alexandrian, others that he
have attained in the church, is absolutely con- was an Athenian" (ov cpacri rive's 'We^avSpea
firmed by internal evidence. Their style and '^repoi of kd-qvoLov, Haer. xxxii. 6). Alexandria
whole colouring are utterly unlike those of the was the principal scene of his labours but ;

genuine epistle and the writer is evidently


; there was no apparent reason for connecting
one whose thoughts and language have been him with Athens by mere conjecture. The
moulded by long and early acquaintance with statement that he was an Athenian must there-
N.T., in the same manner as those of the real fore have rested upon some direct tradition.
Clement are by his acquaintance with the Old. Moreover, in recounting his wanderings he
The Gospel of St. John is more than once makes Greece the starting-point and Alex-
cited, but not any apocryphal N.T. book. andria the goal of his search (Strom, i, § 11,
Competent judges have assigned these epistles p. 322) and in the 2nd cent. Athens was still
;
;

CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA 177

the centre of the literary and spiritual life of the church and he was commemorated in the
;

Greece. We may then with reasonable proba- early Western martyrologies on Dec. 4. His
bility conclude thatClement was an Athenian name, however, was omitted in the martyr-
by training if not by origin, and the fact that ology issued by Clement VIII. after the cor-
he was at the head of the catechetical school rections of Baronius and Benedict XIV. ;

of Alexandria towards the close of the century elaborately defended the omission in a letter
fixes the date of his birth c. a.d. 150-160. to John V. of Portugal, dated 1748. Benedict
Nothing is recorded of his parentage but his argued that the teaching of Clement was at
;

own language seems to imply that he embraced least open to suspicion, and that private usage
Christianitj'by a personal act, as in some sense would not entitle him to a place in the calen-
a convert (Paed. p. 97, rots
i. iraXaia.'s dar (Benedicti XIV. Opera, vi. pp. 119 ff. ed.
§ i,

S6^as
a.Trofxi'v/xevoi Paed. ii. § 62, p. 206, 1842, where the evidence is given in detail;
; cf.
ddKpvd icTfiev ol eh avrbv TreTricrTevKdres), cf. Cognat, Clement d'Alexandrie, pp. 451 ff.).
. . .

and this is directly affirmed by Eusebius ii. Works. —


Eusebius, whom Jerome follows
(Praep. Ev. ii. 2 f.), though perhaps simply by closely with some mistakes (de Vir. III. 38)
inference from Clement's words. Such a con- has given a list of the works of Clement {H. E.
version would not be irreconcilable with the vi. 13) (i) ErpojuaTeXs, libb. viii.
: (2) ;

belief that Clement, like Augustine, was of 'TTroTVTTuKreis, libb. viii. (3) Upbs "EXXTjfas ;

Christian parentage at least on one side but X6705 TTpoTpeTTTiKos (advevsus Gentes, Jerome)
; ;

whether Clement's parents were Christians or (4) Wai^ayijiiyds, libb. iii. (5) Tts 6 cu^6p.evoi ;

heathens it is evident that heathenism at- TrXouaios (6) Ilepi tou irdcrxd.
', (?) AiaX^^ets ',

tracted him for a time and though he soon irepl vrjffTfias


;
(8) Ilfpi KaraXaXlas ; (9)
;

overcame attractions, his inquisitive spirit


its
UporpeirTiKos 7rp6s tov% veixiaTl
ei's virojj.ovijv ^
did not at once find rest in Christianity. He
enumerates six illustrious teachers under jie^awTLCFiJLevov^ (omitted by Jerome) ; (10)

whom he studied the " true tradition of the Kavibv iKKXijjLaaTLKds ^ irpbi roiis 'lovdat ^ovras
blessed doctrine of the holy apostles." His {de Canonibus Ecclesiasticis et adversum eos
first teacher in Greece was an Ionian (Athen- qui Judaeorum sequuntur Jerome). error em,
agoras?) others he heard in Magna Graecia
;
Photius {Bibl. Codd. 109-111) mentions that
others in the East and at last he found in
;
he read the first five works on the list, and
Egypt the true master for whom he had knew by report 6, 7, 8 {irepl KaKoXoytas) ;

sought {Strom, i. § 11, p. 322). There can be 10 {-rrepl Kavovcov eKKXyjaiacTTiKicv) from the ;

no doubt that this master was Pantaenus, to variations in the titles and the omission of 9,
whom he is said to have expressed his obliga- it is evident that he derived his knowledge of
tions in his Hypotyposes (Eus. H. E. vi. 13, these simply from the secondary Greek version
V. 11). Pantaenus was then chief of the of Jerome's list. Nos. i, 3, 4, 5 are still
catechetical school, and though the accounts preserved almost entire. Of 2 considerable
of Eusebius and Jerome (Eus. H. E. v. 10 ;
fragments remain and of 6, 8, 10 a few frag-
;

Hieron. de Vir. III. 36, 38) are irreconcilable ments are preserved in express quotations.
in their details and chronology, it is certain Quotations are also found from a treatise
that on the death or retirement of Pantaenus, Trepi irpovoias, and from another irepl \l/vxvs,
Clement succeeded to his office, and it is not to which Clement himself refers {Strom, iii. 13,
unlikely that he had acted as his colleague p. 516 ; v. 88, p. 699). Elsewhere Clement
before. The period during which Clement speaks of his intention to write On First Prin-
presided over the catechetical school (c. a.d. ciples {irepl dpx<iv, Strom, iii. 13, p. 516 id. 21, ;

190-203) seems to have been the season of his p. 520 ; cf. iv. 2, p. 564) On Prophecy {Strom.
;

greatest literary activity. He was now a V. 88, p. 699 id. iv. 93, p. 605)
;
Against Here- ;

presbyter of the church (Paed. i. § 37, p. 120) sies {Strom, iv. 92, p. 604) On the Resurrection ;

and had the glory of reckoning Origen among {Paed. i. 6, p. 125) On Marriage {Paed. iii. 8,
;

his scholars. On the outbreak of the perse- p. 278). But the references be partly may
cution under Severus (a.d. 202, 203) in which to sections of his greater works, and partly to
Leonidas, the father of Origen, perished, designs never carried out (cf. Strom, iv. 1-3,
Clement retired from Alexandria (Eus. H. E. PP- 563 f.)- No doubt has been raised as to
yi. 3), never, as it seems, to return. Nothing the genuineness of the A ddress, the Tutor, and
is directly stated as to the place of his with- the Miscellanies. Internal evidence shews
drawal. There are some indications of a visit them all the work of one writer (cf. Reinkens,
to Syria (Eus. H. E. vi. 11, 8i> i'crre) and, ; de Clemente, cap. ii. § 4), and they have been
later, we find him in the company of an old quoted as Clement's by a continuous succes-
pupil, Alexander, afterwards bp. of Jerusalem, sion of Fathers even from the time of Origen
and at that time a bp. of Cappadocia, who was {Comm. in Joh. ii. 3, p. 52 b Strom. anony- ; ;

in prison for the faith. If therefore Clement mous). These three principal extant works
had before withdrawn from danger, it was form a connected series. The first is an
through wisdom and not through fear. Alex- exhortation to the heathen to embrace
ander regarded his presence as due to " a Christianity, based on an exposition of the
special providence " (cf. Eus. H. E. vi. 14), and comparative character of heathenism and
charged him, in most honourable terms, with Christianity the second offers a system of
;

a letter of congratulation to the church of training for the new convert, with a view to
Antioch on the appointment of Asclepiades to the regulation of his conduct as a Christian ;
the bishopric of that city, a.d. 311 (Eus. H. E. the third is an introduction to Christian philo-
VI. II). This is the last mention of Clement sophy. The series was further continued
which has been preserved. The time and the in the lost Outlines {virorvwibaeis), in which
place of his death are alike unknown. Popu- Clement laid the foundation of his philosophic
lar opinion reckoned him among the saints of structure in an investigation of the canonical
12

178 CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA


writings. The
mutual relations of these P- 736) —"i.e. c. A.D. 190-195. The writer's de-
writings shew that Clement intended them sign was to prepare from early years, that is
as a complete system of Christian teaching, from the beginning of elementary instruction
corresponding with the " whole economy of (e/c K-ttTTjxTjo'ews), a rule of life growing with the
the gracious Word, Who first addresses, then increase of faith, and fitting the souls of those
trains, and then teaches " {Paed. i. i), bringing just on the verge of manhood with virtue so
to man in due succession conviction, discipline, as to enable them to receive the higher know-
wisdom. The first three books correspond ledge of philosophy " (eis iirKTTTj/xTjs •yvojaTiKrjS
in a remarkable degree, as has frequently been irapadoxnv, Strom. I.e.).
remarked (Potter, ad Protrept. i.), with the The main scope of the Tutor is therefore
stages of the neo- Platonic course, the Puri- practical : the aim is action and not know-
fication (airoKadapffis) the Initiation (pLvrjais),
,
ledge ; but still action as preparatory to
and the Vision {iiroTTTela)- The fourth book knowledge, and resting upon conviction. It
was probably designed to give a solid basis to is divided into three books. The first gives a
the truths which were fleeting and unreal in general description of the Tutor, Who is the
systems of philosophy. Though his style is Word Himself (1-3) of the " children " whom
;

generally deficient in terseness and elegance, He trains. Christian men and women alike
his method desultory, his learning undigested ; (4-6) and ; His general method, using both
of
yet we can still thankfully admire his richness chastisements and love (7-12). The second
of information, his breadth of reading, his and third books deal with special precepts de-
largeness of sympathy, his lofty aspirations, signed to meet the actual difficulties of con-
his noble conception of the office and capacities temporary life and not to offer a theory of
of the Faith. morals. It would not be easy to find else-^
I. The Address to the Greeks (A670S wpoTpetr- where, even in the Roman satirists, an equally
TiKos Trpbs'EWTjvas cf. Strom, vii. § 22, p. 421,
: vivid and detailed picture of heathen manners.
eV T(jj wpoTptiTTLKQ iiTiypa^iOfiivii} ijfuv X67y). The second book contains general directions as
The works of Clement were composed in the to eating and drinking (i f.), furniture (3),
order in which they have been mentioned. entertainments (4-8), sleep (9), the relations of
The Tutor contains a reference to the Address men and women (10), the use of jewellery
in the first section (6 \670s oirvvlKa fxiv eiri (11 f.). The third book opens with an inquiry
crwrrtpiaf irapeKaXfi, TrpoTpewTiKb% 6vofMa into the nature of true beauty (c. i). This
avrci
^v: cf. Strom, leads to a condemnation of extravagance in
vii. §22 Pott. p. 841) and,
dress both in men and in women (2 ff.), of
; ;

if we can trust the assertion of Eusebius


(H. E. V. 28), some of Clement's works were luxurious establishments (4 f.), of the misuse
of wealth (6 f.). Frugality and exercise are
composed before the accession of Victor (a.d.
recommended (8-10) and many minute di-
192). Putting these two facts together, we
may reasonably suppose the Address written rections are added often curiously sugges- — ;

c. A.D. 190. It was addressed to Greeks and


tive in the present times as to dress and —
not to Gentiles generally, as Jerome under- behaviour (11 f.). General instructions from
stood the word (" adversus gentes," de Vir. III. Holy Scripture as to the various duties and
offices of life lead up to the prayer to the Tutor
38). It deals almost exclusively with Greek
mythology and Greek speculation. —
the Word with which the work closes. —
Its general aim is to prove the superiority of
Immediately after the Tutor are printed in the
Christianity to the religions and the philo- editions of Clement two short poems, which
sophies of heathendom, while it satisfies the have been attributed to him. The first,
cravings of humanity to which they bore wit- written in an anapaestic measure, is A Hymn
ness. The gospel is, as Clement shews with of the Saviour Christ {vixvo% rod '^wr^pos
consummate eloquence, the New Song more Xpicrrov), and the second, written in trimeter
powerful than that of Orpheus or Arion, new iambics, is addressed To the Tutor (ds t6v
and yet older than the creation (c. i), pure and TlaL^ay wy6v). The first is said to be
spiritual as contrasted with the sensuality and " Saint Clement's " (rod ayiov K\r}/j.ei>Tos) in
idolatry of the pagan rites, clear and substan- those MSS. which contain it but it may be ;

tial as compared with the vague hopes of poets a work of primitive date, like the Morning
and philosophers (2-9). In such a case, he Hymn which has been preserved in our Com-
argues, custom caimot be pleaded against the munion Office as the Gloria in Excelsis. If
duty of conversion. Man is born for God, and it were Clement's, and designed to occupy its
is bound to obey the call of God, Who through present place, it is scarcely possible that it
the Word is waiting to make him like unto would have been omitted in any MS. while ;

Himself. The choice is between judgment it makes an appropriate and natural addition
and grace, between destruction and life can :
if taken from some other source. There is no
the issue then be doubtful (10-12) ? evidence to shew that the second is Clement's
It is not difficult to point out errors in taste, work it is doubtless an effusion of some pious
;

fact, and argument throughout Clement's scholar of a later date.


appeal but it would be perhaps impossible
;
III. The Miscellanies (STpto/uaTeFs).*—The
to shew in any earlier work passages equal to title, patchwork (or rather bags for holding the
those in which he describes the mission of the bedclothes, like (XTpcofxaTodea-fioi), suggests a true
Word, the Light of men (p. 88), and pictures idea of the character of the work. It is de-
the true destiny of man (pp. 92 ff.). signedly unmethodical, a kind of meadow, as
II. The Tutor (6 Tlaidaywyds cf. Hos. v. 2,
: Clement describes it, or rather a wooded
quoted in Paed. i. 7, p. 129). The TtUor was
written before the Miscellanies, in which the
— • The full title is given at the close of Books i. iii.
V, ; TOiv Kara Tyjv aKriByj ifn\o(TOif)iai' yfuiaTiKdy vno*
Tutor is described generally (Strom, vi. § i, fivrjiJia.Tiiil' (TTpwjiaTets.
CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA 179

mountain (vii. § iii), studded irregularly with the principle of enigmatic teaching. This, he
various growths, and so fitted to exercise the argues, was followed by heathen and Jewish
ingenuity and labour of those likely to profit masters alike {19-26) ; by Pythagoras (27-31);
by it (vi. § 2, p. 736, Pott.)- But yet the book by Moses, in the ordinances of the tabernacle
is inspired by one thought. It is an endeavour (32-41) ; by the Aegyptians (42-44) ;
and by
to claim for the gospel the power of fulfilling many others (45-56). The principle itself is,
all the desires of men and of raising to a he maintains, defensible on intelligible grounds
supreme unity all the objects of knov/ledge, (57-60), and supported by the authority of the
in the soul of the true gnostic —
the perfect apostles (61-67). For in fact the knowledge of
Christian philosopher. The first book, which God can be gained only through serious effort
is mutilated at the beginning, treats in the and by divine help (68-89). This review of the
main of the office and the origin of Greek character and sources of the highest knowledge
philosophy in relation to Christianity and leads Clement back to his characteristic pro-
Judaism. Clement shews that Greek philo- position that the Greeks borrowed from the
sophy was part of the Divine education of men, Jews the noblest truths of their own philo-
subordinate to the training of the law and the sophy. The sixth and seventh books are
prophets, but yet really from God (§§ 1-58 ;
designed, as Clement states (vi. § i) to shew
91-100). In his anxiety to establish this the character of the Christian philosopher (the
cardinal proposition he is not content with gnostic), and so to make it clear that he alone
shewing that the books of O.T. are older than is the true worshipper of God. By way of
those of the philosophers (59-65 101-164 ; ;
prelude Clement repeats and enforces (§§ 4-38)
180-182) but endeavours to prove also that
; what he had said on Greek plagiarisms, yet
the philosophers borrowed from the Jews admitting that the Greeks had some true
(66-90 165 f.).
; After this he vindicates the knowledge of God (39-43), and affirming that
the gospel was preached in Hades to those of

character and explains the general scope of the
law " the philosophy of Moses " (167-179). them who had lived according to their light
The main object of the second book lies in the (44-53)> though that was feeble compared with
more detailed exposition of the originality and the glory of the gospel (54-70). He then
superiority of the moral teaching of revelation sketches the lineaments of the Christian philo-
as compared with that of Greek philosophy sopher, who attains to a perfectly passionless
which was in part derived from it (§§ i ff. ;
state (71-79) and masters for the service of the
20-24 ; 78-96). The argument includes an faith all forms of knowledge, including various
examination of the nature of faith (4-19 ;
mysteries open to him only (80-114). The
25-31), resting on a godly fear and perfected by reward of this true philosopher is proportioned
love (32-55) and of repentance (56-71). He
; to his attainments {115-148). These are prac-
discusses the sense in which human affections tically unlimited in range, for Greek philo-
are ascribed to God (72-75) and shews that
; sophy, though a gift of God for the training of
the conception of the ideal Christian is that the nations, is only a recreation for the Chris-
of a man made like to God (97-126), in accord- tian philosopher in comparison with the serious
ance with the noblest aspirations of philosophy objects of his study (149-168). In the
(127-136). The book closes with a prelimin- seventh book Clement regards the Christian
ary discussion of marriage. The third book philosopher as the one true worshipper of God
investigates the true doctrine of marriage (§§ 1-5), striving to become like the Son of God
(§§ 57-60) as against those who indulged in (5-21), even as the heathen conversely made
every license on the ground that bodily actions their gods like themselves (22-27). The soul
are indifferent (i-ii 25-44) ; and, on the
; is his temple ;
prayers and thanksgivings, his
other hand, those who abstained from marriage sacrifice ;truth, the law of his life (28-54).
from hatred of the Creator (12-24 45-46). ;
Other traits are added to the portraiture of
Various passages of Scripture wrongly inter- " the gnostic " (55-88) and Clement then
;

preted by heretics are examined (61-101) and ; meets the general objection urged against
the two main errors are shewn to be inconsis- Christianity from the conflict of rival sects
tent with Christianity (102-1 10). The fourth (89-92). Heresy, he replies, can be detected
book opens with a very interesting outline of by two tests. It is opposed to the testimony
the whole plan of the comprehensive apology of Scripture (93-105) ;and it is of recent
for Christianity on which he had entered origin (106-108). At the close of the seventh
(§§ 1-3)- The work evidently grew under his book Clement remarks that he " shall proceed
hands, and he implies that he could hardly "
with his argument from a fresh beginning
expect to accomplish the complete design. {twi' e^^s (XTT dWrji o-PXV^ woirjad/JifBa rbv
He then adds fresh traits to his portrait of the \6yov). The phrase may mean that he pro-
true " gnostic." martyrdom,
Self-sacrifice, poses to enter upon a new division of the Mis-
he at the root of his nature (8-56 72-77), ; cellanies, or that he will now pass to another
virtues within the reach of all states and of
portion of the great system of writings
both sexes (57-71), though even this required
sketched out in Strom, iv. 1-3. In favour of
to be guarded against fanaticism and mis-
the first opinion it may be urged that Eusebius
understanding (78-96). Other virtues, as love
{H. E. vi. 13) and Photius {Cod. 109) expressly
and endurance, are touched upon (97-119)
and then Clement gives a picture of a godly ; mention eight books of the Miscellanies ;

while on the other hand the words themselves,


woman (120-131), and of the gnostic, who taken in connexion with vii. i, point rather
rises above fear and hope to that The
perfection to the commencement of a new book.
which rests in the knowledge and Jove of God fragment which bears the title of the eighth
132-174). In the fifth book Clement, fol- book in the one remaining MS. is in fact a
lowing the outline laid down (iv. i), It may naturally
discusses piece of a treatise on logic.
faith and hope
(§§ 1-18), and then passes to have served as an introduction to the examina-
180 CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA
OvaXevrivov, §§ 2, 6, 16, 23, 25
tion of the opinions of Greek philosophers, remark [ol airb
;

i^s (p-qai-v 6
the interpretation of Scripture, and the re- 01 OvaXevTiVLavoi, §§ 21, 24, 37 I

futation of heresies which were the general SeddoTos, §§ 22, 26, 30 (p-qal, §§ 41, 67 <l>a(Ti,
; ;

topics of the second principal member of §§ 33, 35 XeyovaLv, § 43)- It follows that in
;

Clement's plan (iv. 2) but it is not easy to some cases it is uncertain whether Clement
;

see how it could have formed the close of the quotes a Valentinian author by way of ex-
Miscellanies. It is " a fresh beginning" and position, or adopts the opinion which he
nothing more. In the time of Photius quotes. The same ambiguity appears to have
[c. A.D. 850) the present fragment was
reck- existed in the original work and it is easy to ;

oned as the eighth book in some copies, and see how Photius, rapidly perusing the treatise,
in others the tract. On the Rich Man that is
may have attributed to Clement doctrines
Saved {Bibl. in). Still further confusion is which he simply recited without approval and
indicated by the fact that passages from the without examination. Thus, in the frag-
Extracts from the Prophetical Writings are ments which remain, occasion might be given
quoted from " the eighth book of the Mis- to charge Clement with false opinions on the
cellanies " (Bunsen, Anal. Ante-Nic. i. 288 f.), nature of the Son {§ 19). on the creation of
and also from " the eighth book of the Out- Eve (§ 21), on the two Words (§§ 6, 7, 19), on
lines " {id. 285) while the discussion of pro- Fate (§§ 75 ff.), on the Incarnation (§ i).
;

phecy was postponed from the Miscellanies There is no perceptible order or connexion in
to some later opportunity (Strom, vii. i, cf. the series of extracts. The beginning and end
iv. 2). Perhaps the simplest solution is to are equally corrupt. Some sections are quite
suppose that at a very early date the logical detached {e.g. §§ 9, 18, 21, 28, 66, etc.) ;

introduction to the Outlines was separated others give a more or less continuous exposi-^
from the remainder of the work, and added to tion of some mystery e.g. §§ 10-16 (the nature :

MSS. of the Miscellanies. In this way the of spiritual existences) 39-65 (the relations ;

opinion would arise that there were 8 books of of wisdom, Jesus, the Christ, the demiurge ;

the Miscellanies, and scribes supplied the place the material, the animal, the spiritual) 67-86 ;

of bk. viii. according to their pleasure. (birth, fate, baptism).


IV. The Outlines ('TvorvTrwaeis) probably {b) The prophetic selections (e/c twv
irpo4>-r)Ti-

grew out of the Miscellanies. Several express kCov iKXoyai) are for the most part scarcely less
quotations from the 4th, 5th, 6th, and 7th desultory and disconnected than the Sum-
books of the Outlines have been preserved; maries, but far simpler in style and substance.
but the fragments are too few and Clement's They commence with remarks on the symbol-
method too desultory to allow these to furnish ism of the elements, and mainly of water
a certain plan of the arrangement of the work. (§§ 1-8). Then follow fragmentary reflections
They agree, however, fairly with the summary on discipline (9-1 1), on knowledge, faith, cre-
description of Photius, and probably books ation, the new creation (12-24), fire (25 f.), on
i.-iii. contained the general introduction, with
writing and preaching (27), on traits of the
notes on the O.T. (" Genesis, Exodus, and the true gnostic (28-37). A long and miscellane-
Psalms ") books iv.-vi., notes on the Epp. of ous series of observations, some of them
;

St. Paul; books vii. viii., on the Catholic Epp.* physiological, succeeds (38-50), and the collec-
In addition to the detached quotations, tion closes with a fairly continuous exposition
there can be no reasonable doubt that the of Ps. xviii. (xix.).
three series of extracts, (a) The summaries Manuscript. The summaries from Theo-
from the expositions of Theodotus and the so- dotus and the prophetic selections are at present

called Western school, (b) The selections from
found only in Cod. Flor. (L.). The text given
the comments on the prophets, and (c) The in the edd. of Clement is most corrupt. The
outlines on the Catholic Epistles, were taken conjectural emendations and Latin trans, of
from the Outlines. But partly from the Bunsen in his ed. of the
J. Bernays, given by
method of compilation, partly from the manner fragments of The Outlines {Anal. Ante-Ntc. i.),
in which they have been preserved in a single are by far our most valuable help for the
MS., these fragments, though of the deepest understanding of the text. Dindorf, in his
interest, are at present onlv imperfectly in- overlooked these.
ed., lias
telligible.
(c) third important fragment of the
The
(a) The summaries from Theodotus {iK tu>v
Outlines consists of a Latin version of notes on
6eo56Toi' Kai ttjj di'aToXtKTjs KaXov/a^vris dtSaff- detached verses of I. Peter, J tide, and L, II.
KaXlas Kara rovs OvaXei'Tlvov xP^''o^^ iiriTO/j.al) John, with several insertions, probably due in
are at once the most corrupt and the most some' cases to transpositions in the MS. {e.g.
I. John ii. I, hae namque
intrinsically difficult of the extracts. It primitivae, virtutes
appears as if the compiler set down hastily the
passages which contained the interpretations
— audita est, Pott. p. 1009, stands properly in
speculation on J tide
connexion with the line of
of the school which he wished to collect, with- and in others to a marginal illustration
9) ;

out regard to the context, and often in an drawn from some other part of the work {e.g.
imperfect form. Sometimes he adds the Jude 24, cum dicit Daniel confusus est). —
criticism of Clement (liMfls 5^, § 8 ; 'E/xot di,
Cassiodorus says {Inst. Div. Litt. 8) that Clem-
§ 17 6 rifih-epos [\670s], § 33)
; ;
but generally ent wrote some remarks on I. Peter i., II. John,
the Valentinian comment is given without and James, which were generally subtle, but
* Bunsen {Anal. Ante-Nic. i. pp. 163 f.) arranges at times rash and that he himself translated
;

the contents of the books very differently. The them into Latin, with such revision as rend-
evidence is slight but it does not appear from
ered their teaching more safe. It has generally
;

Photius that the Gospels formed the subject of


special annotation, and Bunsen makes the third been supposed, in spite of the difference of
book Commentarius in Evangelia. range {James for Jude) that these Latin notes
"

CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA 181

are the version of Cassiodorus. It seems, ib. vi. 165, p. 826 ; vii. 41, p.855 ;
cf. 6 Kavihv
however, more probable that the printed notes TTJs d.\r]deias, ib. vi. 124, p. 802 131,
; p. 806;
are mere glosses taken from a Catena, and not vii. 94, p. 890 ; 6 Kavihv rrjs iKi<\rjfflai, ib. i. 96,
a substantial work. The Adumhrationes P- 375 vii. 105, p. 897).
! The
examples of
were published by de la Eigne in his Biblio- spiritual interpretation which Clement gives
iheca Patrum, Par. 1575 (and in later editions); in accordance with this traditional " rule
but he gives no account of the MS. or MSS. are frequently visionary and puerile (e.g.
from which the text was taken. Ph. Labbe, Strom, vi. 133 ff. pp. 807 ff.). But none the
however, states (de Scriptt. Eccles. 1660, i. p. less the rule itself witnessed to a vital truth,
230) that he saw an ancient parchment MS., the continuity and permanent value of the
" qui fuit olim Coenobii S. Mariae Montis books of Holy Scripture. This truth was an
Dei," which contained these Adttmbrationes, essential part of the inheritance of the Catholic
under that title, together with Didymus's com- church and Clement, however faulty in de-
;

mentary on the Catholic Epistles. De la tail, did good service in maintaining it (id. vii.
Eigne then, probably, found the notes of 96, p. 891). As yet, however, the contents
Clement in the " very ancient but somewhat of the Christian Bible were imperfectly de-
illegible MS." from which he took his text of fined. Clement, like the other Fathers who
Didymus, which follows the Adumhrationes habitually used the Alexandrine O.T., quotes
(Bibl. vi. p. 676 n.). the books of the Apocrypha without distin-
V. The remaining extant work of Clement, guishing them in any way from the books of
Who is the Rich Man that is Saved ? (tIs aw^o- the Hebrew canon, and he appears to regard
fievos irXovcrios ;) is apparently a popular address the current Greek Bible as answering to the
based upon Mark x. 17-31. The teaching Hebrew Scriptures restored by Ezra (Strom.
is simple, eloquent, and just ;and the tract i. 124, p. 392 id. 148, p. 409).
;
There is the
closes with the exquisite " story, which is no same laxity of usage in Clement with regard
story" of St. John and the young robber, to the N.T. He ascribes great weight to the
which Eusebius relates in his History (iii. 23). Ep. of Barnabas (Strom, ii. 31, p. 445 id. 116, ;

iii. Clements' Position and Influence as a p. 489) and makes frequent use of the
;

Christian Teacher.— \n order to understand Preaching of Peter (Strom, i. 182, p. 427, etc.) ;

Clement rightly, it is necessary to bear in mind and quotes the Gospel ace. to the Hebrews
that he laboured in a crisis of transition. This (Strom, ii. 45, p. 453). Eusebius further adds
gives his writings their peculiar interest in all that he wrote notes on the Revelation of Peter,
times of change. The transition was three- which is in fact quoted in the Extracts from the
fold, affecting doctrine, thought, and life. Prophets (§§ 41, 48, 49). The text of his
Doctrine was passing from the stage of oral quotations is evidently given from memory
tradition to written definition (i). Thought (e.g. Matt. v. 45, vi. 26, etc.). But as the
was passing from the immediate circle of the earliest Greek writer who largely and expressly
Christian revelation to the whole domain of quotes the N.T. (for the Greek fragments of
human experience (2). Life in its fulness was Irenaeus are of comparatively small compass),
coming to be apprehended as the object of his evidence as to the primitive form of the
Christian discipline (3). A few suggestions apostolic writings is of the highest value. Not
will be offered upon the first two of these unfrequently he is one of a very small group
heads. (i) Clement repeatedly affirms of witnesses who have preserved an original
that even when he sets forth the deepest reading (e.g. I. Cor. ii. 13, vii. 3, 5, 35, 39,
mysteries, he is simply reproducing an original etc.). In other cases his readings, even when
unwritten tradition. This had been com- presumably wrong, are shewn by other evid-
mitted by the Lord to the apostles Peter, ence to have been widely spread at a very
James, John, and Paul, and handed down early date (e.g. Matt. vi. 33).
from father to son, till at length he set forth It is impossible here to follow in detail
accurately in writing what had been delivered Clement's opinions on special points of doc-
in word (Strom, i. § 11, p. 322 ;cf. vi. 68, trine. The contrast which he draws between
p. 774 ;and fragm. ap. Eus. H. E. ii. i). But the gnostic (the philosophic Christian) and the
this tradition was, as he held it, not an inde- ordinary believer is of more general interest.
pendent source of doctrine, but a guide to This contrast underlies the whole plan of his
the apprehension of doctrine. It was not Miscellanies, and explains the different aspects
co-ordinate with Scripture, but interpretative in which doctrine, according to his view, might
of Scripture (Strom, vi. 124 f., pp. 802 f. de ; be regarded as an object of faith and as an
Div. Sal. § 5, p. 938). It was the help to the object of knowledge. Faith is the foundation ;

training of the Christian philosopher (6 -^vwa- knowledge the superstructure (Strom, vi. 26,
riKos), and not part of the heritage of the p. 660). By knowledge faith is perfected (id.
simple believer. Tradition in this aspect vii. 55, p. 864), for to know is more than to
preserved the clue to the right understanding believe (id. vi. 109, p. 794). Faith is a sum-
of the hidden sense, the underlying harmonies, mary knowledge of urgent truths knowledge :

the manifold unity of revelation. More par- a sure demonstration of what has been received
ticularly the philosopher was able to obtain through faith, being itself reared upon faith
through tradition the general principles of through the teaching of the Lord {id. vii. 57,
interpreting the records of revelation and p. 865). Thus the gnostic grasps the complete
significant illustrations of their application. truth of all revelation from the beginning of
In this way the true " gnostic " was saved the world to the end, piercing to the depths
from the errors of the false " gnostic " or of Scripture, of which the believer tastes the
heretic, who interpreted Scripture without re- surface only (id. vi.
78, p. 779 131, p. 806 ; ;
gard to " the ecclesiastical rule " (Strom, vi. vii. 95, p. 891). As a consequence of this
125, p. 803, KavCov iKK\r](na(XTiK6s 6 ^kkX. k.
: intelligent sympathy with the Divine Will, the
;

182 CLEMENT OF ALEXANDRIA CLEMENTINE LITERATURE


gnostic becomes in perfect unity in himself sophy fulfilled for the Greeks as a guide to
ifiovadcKds), and as far as possible like God righteousness, and a work of divine providence
{td. iv. 154, p. 633 vii. 13, p. 835).
; Definite (Strom, i. 176 ff. pp. 425 ff. 91 ff. pp. 372 fi.).
;

outward observances cease to have any value He regarded it as a preparation for justifying
for one whose whole being is brought into an faith (Strom, i. 99, p. 377 vi. 44, p. 762
; id. ;

abiding harmony with that which is eternal 47 ff. pp. 764 ff.), and in a true sense a dispen-
:

he has no wants, no passions he rests in the sation, a covenant (Strom, vi. 42, p. 761
; id. ;

contemplation of God, which is and will be 67, P- 773 id. 159, p. 823
; i. 28, p. 331).
;

his unfailing blessedness {id. vii. 35, p. 851, The training of Jews and of the Greeks was
84, p. 883 vi. 71, p. 776
; vii. 56, p. 865).
; thus in different ways designed to fit men for
In this outline it is easy to see the noblest the final manifestation of the Christ. The
traits of later mysticism and if some of
; systems were partial in their essence, and by
Clement's statements go beyond subjects human imperfection were made still more so.
which lie within the powers of man, still he The various schools of philosophy, Jewish and
bears impressive testimony to two essential heathen, are described by Clement under a
truths, that the aim of faith through knowledge memorable image, as rending in pieces the one
perfected by love is the present recovery of the truth like the Bacchants who rent the body of
divine likeness; and that formulated doctrine Pentheus, and bore about the fragments in
is not an end in itself, but a means whereby triumph. Each, he says, boasts that the
we rise through fragmentary propositions to morsel which it has had the good fortune to
knowledge which is immediate and one. gain is all the truth. Yet by the rising of the
(2) The character of the gnostic, the ideal light all things are lightened, and he who again
Christian, the perfect philosopher, represents combines the divided parts and unites the ex-
the link between man, in his earthly conflict, position (\670s) in a perfect whole will look upon-
and God it represents also the link between
: the truth without peril (Strom, i. 57, p. 349).
man and men. The gnostic fulfils through the Towards this great unity of all science and
gospel the destiny and nature of mankind, and all life Clement himself strove and by the ;

gathers together the fruit of their varied ex- influence of his writings kept others alive to
perience. This thought of the Incarnation as the import of the magnificent promises in the
the crown and consummation of the whole teaching of St. Paul and St. John. He af-
history of the world is perhaps that which is firmed, once for all, upon the threshold of the
most characteristic of Clement's office as an new age, that Christianity is the heir of all
interpreter of the faith. It rests upon his past time, and the interpreter of the future. Six-
view of human nature, of the providential teen centuries have confirmed the truth of his
government of God, of the finality of the principle, and left its application still fruitful.
Christian dispensation. Man, according to Clement of Alexandria's works are in Migne's
Clement, is born for the service of God. His Patr. Gk. vols. viii. ix. ; and an ed. of his
soul {\puxv) is a gift sent down to him from Opera ex rec. Guil. Dindorfii in 4 vols, with
heaven by God (Strom, iv. 169, p. 640), and Latin notes is pub. by the Clarendon Press.
strains to return thither {id. 9, p. 567). For A full enumeration of the MSS. of Clement's
this end there is need of painful training works will be found in D. C. B. (4-vol. ed.).
(Strom, i. 33, P- 335 ;vi. 78, p. 779) ;and Besides the chief Church Histories, the fol-
the various partial sciences are helps towards lowing works are important for the study of
the attainment of the true destiny of existence Clement : Le Nourry, Appar. ad Bibliothecam
(Strom, vi. 80 ff. pp. 7S0 ff.). The " image " Patrum, lib. iii. (reprinted in Dindorf's edi-
of God which man receives at his birth is tion) ; Moehler, Patrologie, 1840 Mansel, The ;

slowly completed in the " likeness " of God Gnostic Heresies, lect. xvi. and the histories
;

(Strom, ii. 131, p. 499 cf. Paed. i. 98, p. 156).


; of the Alexandrine School, by Guericke, Matter,
The inspiration of the divine breath by which J. Simon, Vacherot. Interesting summaries of
he is distinguished from other creatures (Gen. Clement's teaching, besides those in the general
ii. 7) is fulfilled by the gift of the Holy Spirit works of Lumper, Marechal, and Schramm,
to the believer, which that original constitu- are given by bp. Kaye (Some Account of the
tion makes possible (Strom, v. 87 f. ;p. 698 : Writings and Opinions of Clement of Alexan-
cf. Strom, iv. 150, p. 632). The image of God, dria, Loud. 1835); abbe Freppel (Clement
Clement says elsewhere, is the Word (Logos), d'Alexandrie, cours a la Sorbonne, Paris, 1866)
and the true image of the Word is man, that Ch. Bigg (The Christian Platonists of Alex-
is, the reason in man (Cohort. 98, p. 79). It andria, Oxf. 1886); F. J. A. Hort (Six Lectures
follows necessarily from this view of humanity, on the Ante-Nicene Fathers, Lond. 1895). A
as essentially related to God through the cheap popular Life is pub. by S.P.C. K. in
Word, that Clement acknowledged a provi- their Fathers for Eng. Readers an Eng. trans,
;

dential purpose in the development of Gentile of the Homily on the Rich Man by P. M. Bar-
life. He recognized in the bright side of nard (S.P.C.K.), text by the same in Texts and
Gentile speculation many divine elements. Studies, vol. v. No. 2 (Camb. Univ. Press), who
These he regarded as partly borrowed from has also collected Clement's Biblical text for
Jewish revelation, and partly derived from the gospel and Acts (ib. vol. v. No. 4). A valu-
reason illuminated by the Word (\6yos), the able ed. of the 7th book of the Miscellanies, with
final source of reason. Some truths, he says, translation, introduction and notes, was pub.
the Greek philosophers stole and disfigured ;
in 1902 at Cambridge by the late Prof. Hort
some they overlaid with restless and foolish and Prof. J. B. Mayor. Translations of most
speculations others they discovered, for they
; of his works are contained in the Ante-Nicene
also perhaps had " a spirit of wisdom " (Ex. Lib. vol. ii. (T. & T. Clark). [b.f.w.]
xxviii. 3) (Strom, i. 87, p. 369). He dis- Clementine Literature. Among the spurious
tinctly recognized the office which Greek philo- writings attributed to Clement of Rome, the
CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE 183

chief one which purported to contain a re-


is of the first books, which is in the
three
cord made by Clement of discourses of the main in fair agreement with the Latin. For
apostle Peter, together with an account of the one of the most important variations see
circumstances under which Clement came to Lightfoot On the Galatians, 4th ed. p. 316. The
be Peter's travelling companion, and of other trans, of Rufinus was first pub. by Sichardus
details of Clement's family history. This work (Basle, 1526). The most important later edd.
assumed a variety of forms. The Ebionitism are by Cotelier in his Apostolic Fathers (Paris,
with which the original work had been strongly 1672) and by Gersdorf (Leipz. 1838). A new
coloured was first softened, then removed. ed., founded on a better collation of MSS., is
Changes were also made with a view to im- much to be wished for. The Syriac trans., an
provement of the story and as time went on
; ed. of which was pub. by de Lagarde, 1861,
far more interest was felt in the framework of is preserved in two MSS. in the British Mu-
narrative than in the discourses themselves. seum. The older of these claims to have been
In the latest forms of the work, several of the written at Edessa, a.d. 411, and exhibits errors
discourses are omitted, and the rest greatly of transcription, which shew that it was taken
abridged. In early times, even when the from a still earlier MS. It contains the books
work was rejected as heretical, it yet seems to i. ii. and iii. of the Recognitions and part of
have been supposed to rest on a groundwork c. i. of book iv., at the end of which is marked
of fact, and several statements passed into " the end of the first discourse of Clemens."
church tradition which appear primarily to rest Then follow the loth homily headed " the
on its authority. Afterwards, in its orthodox third against the Gentiles " the nth homily
;

form, it was accepted as a genuine work of headed " the fourth " the 12th and i3tli
;

Clement and atrustworthyhistoricalauthority. homilies, the former only as far as c. xxiv.,


On the revival of learning the disposition was with the heading " from Tripoli in Phoe-
to disregard the book as a heretical figment nicia " and the 14th homily headed " book
;

quite worthless to the student of church his- xiv.," after which is marked " the end of the
tory. Later it was seen that even if no more discourses of Clemens." The other MS. is
than a historical novel composed with a some four centuries later, and contains only
controversial object towards the end of the the first three books of the Recognitions, the
2nd cent., such a document must be most note at the end being " the ninth of Clemens
valuable in shewing the opinions of the school who accompanied Simon Cephas is ended."
from which it emanated and accordingly the
; Eng. trans, of both the Homilies and the Recog-
Clementine writings play an important part nitions are given in the Ante-Nicene Lib. (T. &
in all modern discussions concernmg the T. Clark).
history of the early ages of the church. III. The Epitome, first pub. by Turnebus,
The work has come down to us in three 1555, is an abridgment of the first form [i.e.
principal forms. I. Thi. Homilies (in the MSS. the Homilies), and contains also a continu-
TO, KXrjixfPTM), first printed by Cotelier in his ation of the story, use being made therein of
edition of the Apostolic Fathers 1672, from one the martyrdom of Clement by Simeon Meta-
of the Colbertine MSS. in the Paris Library. phrastes, and of a tale by Ephraim, bp. of
This manuscript is both corrupt and defec- Chersonesus, of a miracle performed at the
tive, breaking off in the middle of the 19th tomb of Clement. The Epitome is given in
of the 20 homilies of which the entire work forms of varying fulness in different MSS.
consists. The complete work was first pub. The edition by Dressel (Leipz. 1859), besides
by Dressel, 1853, from a MS. which he found giving a fuller version of the Epitome as pre-
in the Ottobonian Library in the Vatican. viously pub., contains also a second form con-
Notes on the homilies by Wieseler, which were siderably different. There must have been at
intended to have formed part of this publica- least one other form not now extant, called by
tion, only appeared in 1859 as an appendix to Uhlhorn the orthodox Clementines, which re-
Dressel's ed. of the Epitomes (see below). The tained the discourses, but completely expur-
two MSS. mentioned are the only ones now gated the heresy contained in them. This is
known to exist. inferred from the citations of the late Greek
II. The Recognitions {dvayvw<T€LS, avayvt>spi<T- writers (Nicephorus Callisti, Cedrenus, and
IJ.oi) bears in the MSS. a great variety of titles, Michael Glycas) and the Clementines so
;

the most common being Itinerarium S. dem- amended were so entirely accepted by the later
entis (corresponding probably to -n-epioSoL Greek church, that a Scholiast on Eusebius is
KXrjfjLevTos or ireploSoi HiTpov). The ori- quite unable to understand the charge of
ginal is lost, but the work is preserved in a heresy which his author brings against them.
translation by Rufinus, of which many MSS. In what follows we set aside the Epitomes as
confine our
are extant. Rufinus states in his preface that being manifestly a late form, and
there were then extant two forms differing in attention to the other two forms, viz. the
many respects. He adds that he had omitted Homilies and Recognitions, to which, or to
certain passages common to both, one of their writers, we shall refer as H. and R. Of
which he specifies, as being, to say the least, these the Homilies contain all the character-
unintelligible to him ; and elsewhere expresses istics of Ebionitism in much the harsher form ;

his opinion that those passages had been inter- but before discussing the doctrine, we will
polated by heretics. He claims to have aimed compare the narratives as told in either form.
at giving rather a literal than an elegant trans- The following is an abstract of the Recogni-
lation and there seems reason to regard this tions. The form is that of an autobiography
;

translation as more faithful than some others addressed by Clement to James, bp. of Jeru-
by him. We can test his work in the case of salem. The work divides itself into three
fragments of the original preserved by quota- portions, probably of different dates.
tion, and, nioreover, we have a Syriac trans. I. Clement, having stated that be was
born
184 CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE
at Rome and from early years a lover of tured that this document was an Ebionite work
chastity, gives a lively description of the per- 'Ava^adfxol 'laKujiov, the contents of which, as
plexity caused him by his anxiety to solve the described by Epiphanius (xxx. 16), well cor-
problems, what had been the origin and what respond with those of this section, and the
would be the future of the world, and whether title of which might be explained as referring
he himself might look forward to a future life. to discourses on the temple steps. But this
He seeks in vain for knowledge in the schools conjecture encounters the difficulty that the
of the philosophers, finding nothing but dis- author himself indicates a different source for
putings, contradiction, and uncertainty. At this part of his work.
length a rumour that there had arisen in Judaea We are next introduced to two disciples of
a preacher of truth possessed of miraculous Peter, Nicetas and Aquila, who had been dis-
power is confirmed by the arrival of Barnabas ciples of Simon. These give an account of the
in Rome, who declares that the Son of God was history of Simon and of his magical powers,
even then preaching in Judaea, and promising stating that Simon supposed himself to per-
eternal life to His disciples. Barnabas is form his wonders by the aid of the soul of a
rudely received by the Roman rabble, and murdered boy, whose likeness was preserved
returns to his own country in haste to be present in Simon's bed-chamber. Prepared with this
at a Jewish feast. Clement, though desirous information, Peter enters into a public discus-
to accompany him for further instruction, is sion with Simon which lasts for three days, the
detained by the necessity of collecting money main subject in debate being whether the
due to him but sails shortly after for Pales- difficulty of reconciling the existence of evil
;

tine, and after a fifteen days' voyage arrives at with the goodness and power of the Creator
Caesarea. There he finds Barnabas again and does not force us to believe in the existence of a
is introduced by him to Peter, who had arrived God different from the Creator of the world.
at Caesarea on the same day, and who was on The question of the immortality of the soul is
the next to hold a discussion with Simon the also treated of, and this brings the discussion
Samaritan. Peter forthwith frees Clement to a dramatic close. For Peter offers to settle
from his perplexities, by instructing him in the the question by proceeding to Simon's bed-
doctrine of the " true prophet." For one who chamber, and interrogating the soul of the
has received the true prophet's credentials murdered boy, whose likeness was there pre-
there is an end of uncertainty ; faith in Him served. On finding his secret known to Peter,
can never be withdrawn, nor can anything Simon humbles himself, but retracts his re-
which He teaches admit of doubt or question. pentance on Peter's acknowledging that he had
Clement by Peter's orders committed his this knowledge, not by prophetic power, but
teaching to writing, and sent the book to from associates of Simon. The multitude,
James, to whom Peter had been commanded however, are filled with indignation, and drive
annually to transmit an account of his doings. Simon away in disgrace. Simon departs, in-
We are next told that Simon postponed the forming his disciples that divine honours await
appointed discussion with Peter, who uses the him at Rome. Peter resolves to follow him
interval thus gained to give Clement a con- among the Gentiles and expose his wickedness;
tinuous exposition of the faith, in which God's and having remained three months at Caesarea
dealings are declared from the commencement for the establishment of the church, he ordains
of the world to the then present time. This Zacchaeus as its bishop, and sets out for Tri-
section includes an account of a disputation polis, now the centre of Simon's operations.
held on the temple steps between the apostles This brings the third book of the Recognitions
and the various sects of the Jews, viz. the to a close and here we are told that Clement
;

priests, the Sadducees, the Samaritans, the sent to James an account in ten books of
Scribes and Pharisees, and the disciples of Peter's discourses, of which the author gives
John. When the apostles are on the point of the contents in detail, from which we may
success the disputation is broken off by a conclude that they formed a work really in
tumult raised by an unnamed enemy, who is existence previous to his own composition.
unmistakably Saul, who flings James down These contents can scarcely be described as an
the temple steps, leaving him for dead, and abstract of the three books of the Recognitions;
disperses the assembly. The disciples fly to for though the same topics are more or less
Jericho, and the enemy hastens to Damascus, touched on, the order and proportion of treat-
whither he supposes Peter to have fled, in ment are different. One of the books is de-
order there to make havoc of the faithful. At scribed as treating of the Apostles' disputation
Jericho, James hears from Zacchaeus of the at the temple and therefore it seems needless
;

mischief being done by Simon at Caesarea, and to look for the original of this part in the
sends Peter thither to refute him, ordering him Ascents of James or elsewhere.
to report to him annually, but more particu- II. On Peter's arrival at Tripolis he finds-
larly every seven years. In the section just that Simon, hearing of his coming, had fled
described there are some things which do not by night to Syria. Peter proceeds to instruct
harmonize with what has gone before. The the people and his discourses, containing a
;

date of the events related is given as seven polemic against heathenism, occupy the next
years after our Lord's passion, although the three books of R. Bk. vi. terminates with
previous story implies that Clement's voyage the baptism of Clement and the ordination of
had been made in the very year that ended our a bishop, after which Peter sets out for Antioch,
Lord's ministry. Also in one place (L 71) having spent 3 months at Tripolis.
Peter is mentioned in the third person, though III. With bk. vii. the story of Clement's
he is himself the speaker. These facts prove recognition of his family begins. We shall
that the story of Clement has been added on presently discuss how an occasion is skilfully
to an older document. It has been conjec- presented for Clem_ent's_ relating hi? fam,ily
CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE 185

history to Peter. That history is as follows the forms of the Recognitions known to him
:

Clement's father, Faustinianus, was a member closed here but in the tenth book as we have
;

of the emperor's family, and married by him it, the story is prolonged by discourses in-
to a lady of noble birth, named Mattidia. By tended to bring Faustinianus to a hearty re-
her he had twin sons, Faustus and Faustinus, ception of Christianity. After this Simon is
and afterwards Clement. When Clement was again brought on the stage. He has been very
five years old, Mattidia told her husband that successful at Antioch in shewing wonders to
she had seen a vision warning her that unless the people and stirring up their hatred against
she and her twin sons speedily left Rome and Peter. One of Peter's emissaries, in order to
remained absent for ten years, all must perish drive him to flight, prevails on Cornelius the
miserably. Thereupon the father sent his centurion, who had been sent on public busi-
wife and children with suitable provision of ness to Caesarea, to give out that he had been
money and attendance to Athens, in order to commissioned to seek out and destroy Simon,
educate them there. But after her departure in accordance with an edict of the emperor for
no tidings reached Rome, and Faustinianus, the destruction of sorcerers at Rome and in
having in vain sent others to inquire for them, the provinces. Tidings of this are brought to
at length left Clement under guardianship at Simon by a pretended friend, who is in reality
Rome, and departed himself in search of them. a Christian spy. Simon, in alarm, flees to
But he too disappeared, and Clement, now Laodicea, and there meeting Faustinianus,
aged thirty-two, had never since heard of who had come to visit their common friends,
father, mother, or brothers. The story pro- Apion (or, as our author spells it, Appion) and
ceeds to tell how Peter and Clement on their Anubion, transforms by his magic the features
way to Antioch go over to the island of Aradus of Faustinianus into his own, that Faustinian-
to see the wonders of a celebrated temple there. us may be arrested in his stead. But Peter,
While Clement and his party are admiring not being deceived by the transformation,
works of Phidias preserved in the temple, turns it to the greater discomfiture of Simon.
Peter converses with a beggar woman outside, For he sends Faustinianus to Antioch, who,
and the story she tells of hei life is in such pretending to be Simon, whose form he bore,
agreement with that previously told him by makes a public confession of imposture, and
Clement, that Peter is able to unite mother testifies to the divine mission of Peter. After
and son. The vision which she had related this, when Simon attempts again to get a
had been feigned in order to escape from the hearing in Antioch, he is driven away in
incestuous addresses of her husband's brother, disgrace. Peter is received then with the
without causing family discord by revealing greatest honour and baptizes Faustinianus,
his wickedness. On her voyage to Athens she who has meanwhile recovered his own form.
had been shipwrecked, and cast on shore by We turn now to the story as told in the
the waves, without being able to tell what had Homilies. The opening is identical with that
become of her children. All now return to the of the Recognitions, except for one small varia-
main land, and on telling the story to their tion. Clement, instead of meeting Barnabas
companions who had been left behind, Nicetas in Rome, has been induced by an anonymous
and Aquila recognize their own story and de- Christian teacher to sail for Palestine ; but
clare themselves to be the twin sons, who had being driven by storms to Alexandria, there
been saved from the wreck and sold into encounters Barnabas. It is not easy to say
slavery by their rescuers. Mattidia is bap- which form is the original. On the one hand,
tized. After the baptism Peter and the three the account that Clement is delayed from fol-
brothers, having bathed in the sea, withdraw lowing Barnabas by the necessity of collecting
to a retired place for prayer. An old man in a money due to him is perfectly in place if the
workman's dress accosts them and undertakes scene is laid at Rome, but not so if Clement is a
to prove to them that prayer is useless, and stranger driven by stress of weather to Alex-
that there is neither God nor Providence, but andria. The author, who elsewhere shews
that all things are governed by astrological fate Alexandrian proclivities, may have wished to
(genesis). A set disputation takes place and honour that city by connecting Barnabas with
occupies bks. viii. ix.; the 3 brothers, being it or was perhaps unwilling that Peter should
;

well trained in Grecian philosophy, successively be preceded by another apostle at Rome. On


argue on the side of Providence, and discuss the other hand, the rabble which assails Bar-
the evidence for astrology. The discussion is nabas is in both versions described as a mob of
closed by a dramatic surprise. When all the Greeks, and the fifteen days' voyage to Pales-
old man's other difficulties have been solved, tine corresponds better with Alexandria than
he undertakes to produce a conclusive argu- with Rome. The narrative proceeds as in R.
ment from his own experience. His own wife as far as the end of Peter's disputation with
had been born under a horoscope which com- Simon at Caesarea ; but both Peter's prelim-
pelled her to commit adultery, and to end her inary instructions to Clement and the disputa-
days by water in foreign travel. And so it tion itself are different. In H. Peter prepares
turned out. She had been guilty of adultery Clement by teaching him his secret doctrine
with a slave, as he had learned on his brother's concerning difficulties likely to be raised by
testimony, and afterwards leaving Rome with Simon, the true solution of which he could not
her twin sons on account of a pretended vision, produce before the multitude. Simon would
had perished miserably by shipwreck. Peter bring forward texts which seemed to speak of
has now the triumph of fully reuniting the a plurality of Gods, or which imputed imper-
family and gaining a victory in the discussion, fection to God, or spoke of Him as changing
by shewing the complete falsification of the His purpose or hardening men's hearts and
astrological prediction. From the account so forth or, again, which laid crimes to the
;

given by Rufinus, it would seem that one of charge of the just men of the law, Adam and
186 CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE
Noah, Abraham, Jacob, and Moses. In public ones only after such an one had been tried
it would be inexpedient to question the author- and found faithful with regard to the earlier.
ity of these passages of Scripture, and the Subjoined is an oath of secrecy to be taken by
difficulty must be met in some other way. those to whom the writings shall be communi-
But the true solution is that the Scriptures cated. Examination shews that the letter of
have been corrupted and all those passages
; Clement cannot belong to the Homilies ; for
which speak against God are to be rejected as its account of Clement's deprecation of the
spurious additions. Although this doctrine is dignity of the episcopate, and of the charges
represented as strictly esoteric, it is reproduced given to him on his admission to it, are in great
in the public discussion with Simon which measure identical with what is related in the
immediately follows. This disputation in H. 5th homily, in the case of the ordination of
is very short, the main conflict between Peter Zarchaeus at Caesarea. These are omitted
and Simon being reserved for a later stage of from the story as told in the Recognitions. The
the story. It is here stated, however, that inference follows that the letter of Clement is
this disputation at Caesarea lasted three days, the preface to the Recognitions. Thus, accord-
although only the subjects treated on the first ing to the conclusion we form on other grounds
day are mentioned. We have next a great as to the relative priority of the two forms,
variation between H. and R. According to H., either R., when prefixing his account of Clem-
Simon, vanquished in the disputation, flies to ent's ordination, transposed matter which the
Tyre, and Nicetas, Aquila, and Clement are older document had contained in connexion
sent forward by Peter to prepare the way for with Zacchaeus, or H., when substituting for
him. There they meet Apion, and a public the letter of Clement a letter in the name of
disputation on heathen mythology is held be- Peter himself, found in Clement's letter matter
tween Clement and Apion, the debate going which seemed too valuable to be wasted, and^
over many of the topics treated of in the tenth therefore worked it into the account of the
book of R. On Peter's arrival at Tyre, Simon first ordination related in the story, that of
flies on to Tripolis, and thence also to Syria on Zacchaeus. The letter of Peter thus remains
Peter's continuing the pursuit. We have, as as the preface either to the Homilies or to the
in R., discourses delivered to the heathen at earlier form of the work before the name of
Tripolis, and the story of the discovery of Clement had been introduced. On the ques-
Clement's family is in the main told as in R., tion of relative priority it may be urged that
with differences in detail to be noticed pre- it is more likely that a later writer would
sently. In H., the main disputation between remove a preface written in the name of Clem-
Peter and Simon takes place after the recog- ent, in order to give his work the higher author-
nitions, and is held at Laodicea, Clement's ity of Peter, than that the converse change
father (whose name according to H. is Faustus) should be made ; and also that the strong
acting as judge. The last homily contains ex- charges to secrecy and to the communication
planations given by Peter to his company after of the work in successive instalments would be
the flight of Simon and concludes with an
; accounted for, if we suppose that at the time of
account similar to that in R., of the transfor- the publication of the Homilies another version
mation of Clement's father. of Peter's discourses had been in circulation,
To this analysis must be added an account and that the writer was anxious to offer some
of the prefatory matter. Neither the I,atin account why what he produced as the genuine
nor Syriac version of the Recognitions trans- form of the discourses should not have been
lates any preface ; but Rufinus mentions earlier made known. Respecting this rela-
having found in his original a letter of Clement tive priority there has been great diversity of
to James, which he does not prefix, because, as opinion among critics : Baur, Schliemann,
he says, it is of later date and he had trans- Schwegler, and Uhlhorn give the priority to
lated it elsewhere. The remark about later H., Hilgenfeld and Ritschl to R. ; Lehmann
date need not imply any doubt of its genuine- holds R. to be the original for the first three
ness, but merely that the letter, which pur- books, H. in the later part. Lipsius regards
ports to have been written after the death of both as independent modifications of a com-
Peter, is not rightly prefixed to discourses mon original. Without speaking over-con-
which claim to have been written some years fidently, our own conclusion is, that while
previously. The letter itself is preserved in neither of the existing documents can claim
the MSS. of the Homilies, and gives an ac- to be the original form, they are not independ-
count of Peter's ordination of Clement as his ent that H. is the later and in all that relates
;

successor at Rome, and closes with instruc- to Clement's family history has borrowed from
tions to Clement to send to James an abstract R. Probably the original form contained
of Peter's discourses. The work that follows little but discourses, and was probably an
purports to contain an abridgment of dis- esoteric document, in use only among the
courses already more fully sent to J ames ; and Ebionites and the author of R. may have
;

is given the title :


" An epitome by Clement added to it the whole story of Clement's re-
"
of Peter's discourses during his sojournings covery of his parents, at the same time fitting
{iin.5rjfiLCov Kijpvy/j.dTiai'). The Homilies con- the work for popular use by omitting or
tain another preface in the form of a letter softening down the harshest parts of its Ebion-
from Peter himself to James. In this no itism and finally, H., a strong Ebionite, may
;

mention is made of Clement, but Peter himself have restored some of the original discourses,
sends his discourses to James, strictly for- retaining the little romance which no doubt
bidding their indiscriminate publication, and had been found to add much to the popularity
charging him not to communicate them to any and attractiveness of the volume. The follow-
Gentile, nor even to any of the circumcised, ing are some of the arguments which proy§
except after a long probation, and the later that H. is not an original,
CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE 187

(i) The story of Clement's first recognition Tyre ;but failed to notice that he ought in
of his family is told in exactly the same way consistency to have modified some of the next
in R. book 7, and in H. book 12. Clement, portion of R. which he retained. This dis-
anxious to be permitted to join himself per- putation with Apion has been alleged as a
manently as travelling companion to Peter, proof of the priorit5' of H., for Apion is intro-
reminds him of words used at Caesarea how : duced also into R., but only as a silent char-
Peter had there invited those to travel with acter ;and it is urged that the original form
him who could do so with piety, that is, with- is more likely to be that in which this
out deserting wife, parents, or other relations well-known adversary of Judaism conducts a
whom they could not properly leave. Clement disputation, than that in which he is but an
states that he is himself one thus untrammelled, companion of Simon. But this
insigiaificant
and he is thus led to tell the story of his life.argument does not affect the relative priority
These words of Peter, to which both R. and of H. and R., whatever weight it may have
H. refer, are to be found only in R. (iii. 71), in proving R. not original. Eusebius (iii. 38)
not in H. It has been stated that the ordin- mentions a long work ascribed to Clement,
ation of Zacchaeus at Caesarea is told fully in and then but recently composed fas he infers
H., and only briefly in R. In recompense R. from not having seen it quoted by any earlier
has a long section describing the grief of the writer), containing dialogues of Peter and
disciples at Peter's departure and the consola- Apion. This description may be intended for
tions which he addressed to them all this the Homilies
; but may refer to a stiU earlier
;

is compressed into a line or two in H. It is work. There are expressions in R. which


matter which any one revising R. would most seem to imply that the writer believed himself
naturally cut out as unimportant and unin- to be making an improvement in substituting
teresting ;but we see that it contains words for Peter as a disputant against heathenism,
essential in the interests of the story, and persons whose early training had been such as
can hardly doubt that these words were intro- to give them better knowledge of heathen
duced with a view to the use subsequently mythology and philosophy.
made of them. This instance not only shews, (3) The story of Clement's recognition of
as Lehmann admits, that H. is not original in his brothers contains plain marks that H. has
respect of the Caesarean sections, but still abridged R. According to R., Nicetas and
more decisively refutes Lehmann's own hypo- Aquila, seeing a strange woman return with
thesis that it was H. who ornamented an Peter and Clement, ask for an explanation.
originally simpler story with the romance of Peter then repeats fully the story of the ad-
the recognitions. Either the author of that ventures of Clement's mother. Nicetas and
romance, as is most probable, was also the Aquila listen in silence until Peter describes
author of Peter's Caesarean speech, which has the shipwrecked mother searching for her
little use except as a preparation for what children and crying, " Where are my Faustus
follows ; or else, finding that speech in an and Faustinus ? " then, hearing their own
earlier document, used it as a connecting link names mentioned, they start up in amaze and
to join on his own addition. In either case he say, " We suspected at the first that what you
must have been fully alive to its importance, were saying might relate to us ; but yet as
and it is quite impossible that he could have many like things happen in different persons'
left it out from his version of the story. lives, we kept silence but when you came to
;

Moreover, of the two writers H. and R., H. is the end and it was entirely manifest that your
the one infinitely less capable of inventing a statements referred to us, then we confessed who
romance. Looking at the whole work as a we were." H. avoids what seems the needless
contro\ ersial novel, it is apparent all through repetition of an already-told story, and only
that H. feels most interest in the controversy, states in general terms that Peter recounted
R. in the novel. Mattidia's history but the amazed starting-
;

(2) Further, in the same section in the up of the brothers, and their words, are the
passage common to H. and R., Peter sends on same as in R. while, as the incident of the
;

Nicetas and Aquila to prepare the way for his mention of their former names is omitted, it
coming. He apologizes for parting company is in this version not apparent why the con-
with them, and they express grief at the sepa- clusion of Peter's speech brought conviction
ration, but console themselves that is it only to their minds. Evidently H., in trying to
for two days. On their departure Clement shorten the narrative by clearing it of repeti-
says, " I thank God that it was not I whom tion, has missed a point in the story.
you sent away, as I should have died of grief." (4) As told above, in R. the recognition of
Then follows the request that Peter would Clement's father crowns a disputation on
accept him as his inseparable companion. astrological fate. In H. the whole story is
This is all consistent as told by R. ; for these spoiled. An old man accosts Peter, as in R.,
regrets are expressed on the first occasion that and promises to prove from his personal
any of the three brothers is removed from history that all things are ruled by the stars ;
personal attendance on Peter. But as H. but nothing turns on this. The recognition
tells the story, Peter had already sent on takes place in consequence of a chance meeting
Clement, while still unbaptized, together with of Faustinianus with his wife, and has no
Nicetas and Aquila, to Tyre, where they hold relation to the subject he undertakes to discuss
a disputation with Apion. There is not a with Peter. The obvious explanation is, that
word of grief or remonstrance at the separation H. has copied the introduction from R. ; but
for more than a week, and it is therefore omits the disputation because he has already
strange that subsequently there should be so anticipated it, having put the argument for
much regret at a two days' parting. It is heathenism into the mouth of the eminent
plain that H. has interpolated the mission to rhetorician Apion, who seemed a fitter char-
188 CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE
actcr to conduct the disputation than the the permission of evil in the universe) that this
unknown Faustinianus. Further H. (xx. 15) also must be set down as an addition made by
and R. 57) both state that the magical H. to the original story.
(x. We can see why H.
transformation of Clement's father takes place altered the original account of a Caesarean

on the same day that he had been recognized disputation namely, that he wished to re-
by his family. This agrees with the story as serve as the climax of his story, the solutions
told by R. but H. had made five days' which he put into Peter's mouth of the great
;

disputation intervene between the recognition controversy of his own day.


and the transformation. Thus in the account (7) In section H. ii. 19-32, which contains
of each of the three sets of recognitions there the information given by Nicetas and Aquila
is evidence that H. copied either from R. or concerning Simon, there are plain marks that
from a writer who tells the story exactly as R. H. is not original. Nicetas, in repeating a con-
does and the former hypothesis is to be pre- versation with .Simon, speaks of himself in the
;

ferred because there is no evidence whatever of third person :


" Nicetas answered," instead of
R.'s non-originality in this part of his task. " I answered." In the corresponding section
(5) We have seen that in H. there are two of R., Aquila is the speaker, and the use of the
disputations of Simon with Peter, viz. at third person is correct. Yet this matter, in
Caesarea and at Laodicea. There is decisive which H. is clearly not original, is so different
proof that in this H. has varied from the from R., that we conclude that both copied
original form, which, as R. does, laid the scene from a common original. One instance in
of the entire disputation at Caesarea. The this section, however, deserves to be men-
indications here, however, point to a borrowing tioned as an apparent case of direct copying
not from R. but from a common original. H. from R. In H. ii. 22, Simon is represented as
does relate a disputation at Caesarea, but evi- teaching that the dead shall not rise, and as
dently reserves his materials for use further on, rejecting Jerusalem and substituting Mount
giving but a meagre sketch of part of one day's Gerizim for it ;but nowhere else is there a
dispute, while he conscientiously follows his trace of such doctrine being ascribed to Simon ;

authority and relates that the dispute lasted and no controversy on these subjects is re-
three days. Afterwards at Laodicea the ported in the Homilies. There is strong reason
topics brought forward in the earlier discussion for suspecting that H. has here blundered in
are produced as if new. Simon, e.g., expresses copying R. i. 57, where a Samaritan, whom
the greatest surprise at Peter's manner of there is no ground for identifying with Simon,
disposing of the alleged spurious passages of is introduced as teaching these doctrines of
the Pentateuch, although exactly the same line the non- resurrect ion of the dead, and of the
of argument had been used by Peter on the sanctity of Mount Gerizim.
former occasion. The phenomenon again We turn to some of the reasons why R.
presents itself (H. xviii. 21) of a reference to must also be regarded as the retoucher of a
former words of Peter which are not to be previously existing story. The work itself
found in H. itself, but are found in R. ii. 45. recognizes former records of the things which
Lastly, in the disputation at Laodicea, the it relates. In the preface it purports to be an
office of summoning Peter to the conflict is account written after the death of Peter of
ascribed to Zacchaeus, in flagrant contradic- discourses, some of which had by Peter's com-
tion of the previous story, according to which mand been written down and sent to James
Zacchaeus was the leading man of the church during his own lifetime. R. iii. 75 contains
at Caesarea before Peter's arrival, and had an abstract of the contents of ten books of
been left behind as its bishop on Peter's de- these previously-sent reports. Again, R. v.
parture. This alone is enough to shew that 36, we are told of the dispatch to James of a
H. is copying from an original, in which the further instalment. Everything confirms the
scene is laid at Caesarea. It may be added conclusion that R. is here using the credit
that the Apostolic Constitutions make mention which an existing narrative had gained, in
only of a Caesarean disputation. order to obtain acceptance for his own addi-
(6) It has been stated that the last homily tions to the story. Moreover, as we have seen,
contains private expositions by Peter to his there are instances in the first division of the
disciples, and these can clearly be proved to work where H. is clearly not original, and yet
be an interpolation. In R., after the disputa- has not copied from R. whence we infer the
;

tion on " genesis " in which Clement's father is existence of an independent authority, at least
convinced, the party having returned home and for the earlier portion, employed by both
being about to sit down to meat, news comes writers. There are places where H. and R.
of the arrival of Apion and Anubion and seem to supplement one another, each supply-
Faustinianus goes to salute them. In H. the ing details omitted by the other other places
;

party have retired to rest, and Peter wakes where it would seem as if an obscure passage
them up in the middle of the night to receive in the common original had been differently
his instructions yet in the middle of this understood by each
; ;and in the discourses
midnight discourse we have an account, almost common to both, there are places where the
verbally agreeing with R., of the news of the version presented by H. preserves so much
arrival of Apion coming just as they were better the sequence of ideas and the cogency
about to sit down to meat, and the consequent of argument that it is scarcely possible to think
departure of Clement's father. The discourse, the form in R. the original (cf. esp. H. ix. 9,
thus clearly shewn to be an interpolation, con- 10, R. iv. 15, 16). There are places, again,
tains H.'s doctrine concerning the devil, and where both seem to have abridged the common
is in such close connexion with the preceding original. Thus R. mentions concerning an
homily (which relates how Peter, in his Laodi- early conversation, that none of the women
cean disputation, dealt with the problem of were present. There is no further mention of
CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE l89
women in the party until quite late in the story where they are inappropriate. A question
both H. and R. incidentally speak of Peter's may be raised whether the document referred
wife as being in the company. In may be to in R. iii. 75, and which contained an ac-
noted in passing that they do not represent count of the disputation with Simon, was part
Peter and his wife as living together as married of the same work as that referred to in v. 36,
people but Peter always sleeps in the same
; which contained the disputation against the
room with his disciples. We may conjecture heathen. We have marked them as probably
that the original contained a formal account different. It may be remarked that Peter's
of the women who travelled with Peter, and daily bath, caret ullyrecorded in the later books,
this is confirmed by St. Jerome, who refers to is not mentioned in the three earlier. A ques-
a work called the circuits of Peter {wcpiodoi) tion may be raised whether the original did not
as mentioning not only Peter's wife, but his contain an account of a meeting of Simon and
daughter, of whom nothing is said either by Peter at Rome and it is not impossible that
;

H. or R. The work cited by J erome contained such an account may have been originally de-
a statement that Peter was bald, which is not signed by the author as one or two references
;

found either in H. or R. In like manner we to Rome as well as the choice of Clement as the
may infer that the original contained a formal narrator give cause to suspect. But that in
account of the appointment of 12 precursors any case the design was not executed appears
(7rp6o5o0 who were to go before Peter to the both from the absence of any early reference
different cities which he meant to visit. H. to a Roman contest between Simon and Peter ;

several times speaks of the precursors, assum- and also from the diversity of the accounts
ing the office to be known to the reader, but given as to the manner of Simon's death, since
without ever recording its appointment. R. we may believe that if the document we are
does give an account of its appointment, but considering had related the story, its version
onewhich implies that Peter had come attended would have superseded all others.
by 12 companions, of whom Clement was Quite a different impression as to relative
already one. We have already mentioned in- originality is produced when we compare the
consistencies in this first section from which doctrine of H. and R., and when we com-
we infer, that though the original form of the pare their narratives. The doctrine of H.
story mentioned the name of Clement, the is very peculiar, and, for the most part, con-
introduction containing the account of Clem- sistently carried through the whole work in ;

ent's journey from Rome is a later addition. R. the deviations from ordinary church teach-
We conclude that the work cited by Jerome ing are far less striking, yet there are passages
is the common original of H. and R. ; and a in which the ideas of H. can be traced, and
comparison of the matter common to the two which present the appearance of an imperfect
shews that both pretty freely modified the expurgation of offensive doctrine. In H.,
original to their own uses. From what has Judaism and Christianity are represented as
been said concerning H. under No. 7, we infer identical, and it is taught to be enough if a
that the original contained mention both of man recognize the authority either of Christ
Clement and of Nicetas and Aquila, and it is or of Moses in R. he is required to acknow-
;

likely that Clement was there too represented ledge both. On this point, however, H. is not
as the recorder of the discourses. The original consistent for
; in several places he agrees
must have contained an account of a three with R. in teaching the absolute necessity of
days' disputation with Simon held at Cae- baptism to salvation. H. rejects the rite of
sarea ;
it also included the polemic against sacrifice altogether according to R. the rite
;

heathenism contained in the Tripolis dis- was divinely permitted for a time until the
courses, as may be inferred both from R. v. 36 true prophet should come, who was to replace
and also from a comparison of the two records it by baptism as a means of forgiveness of sins.
of these discourses. It is likely that the same With respect to the authority of O.T. alleged
work contained the disputation of Peter and for the rite of sacrifice, and for certain erro-
Apion referred to by Eusebius, and that H. neous doctrines, H. rejects the alleged pas-
followed the original in making Apion a speak- sages as falsified R. regards them merely as
;

ing character, although he has been involved obscure, and liable to be misunderstood by one
in confusion in trying to combine this with the who reads them without the guidance of tra-
additional matter imported by R. We may dition. The inspiration of the prophets later
conjecture too (see R. x. 52) that it also con- than Moses is denied by H. and admitted by
tained a disputation by Anubion on the R., though quotations from their writings are
subject of " genesis." On the other hand, alike rare in both forms. According to H., the
there is no evidence that the original contained true prophet has presented himself in various
anything concerning the recognitions by Clem- incarnations, Adam, who is regarded as being
ent of the members of his family. In this part identical with Christ, being the first and Jesus
of the story R. makes no acknowledgment of the last ; and the history of Adam's sin is
previous accounts sent to James ; and he rejected as spurious according to R., Christ
;

shews every sign of originality and of having has but revealed Himself to and inspired
carefully gone over the old story, skilfully various holy men of old. And, in general,
adapting it so as to join on his own additions. concerning the dignity and work of our Lord,
It appears from H. ii. 22, 26, that in quite an the doctrine of R., though short of orthodox
early part of the history the original intro- teaching, is far higher than that of H. The
duced Nicetas and Aquila as addressing their history of the fall, as far, at least, as regards
fellow-disciple Clement as " dearest brother," the temptation of Eve, is referred to by R. as
and this probably gave R. the hint (see R. historical ;but concerning Adam there are
viii. 8) of representing them as natural broth- intimations of an esoteric doctrine not fully
ers. R. omits these expressions in the place explained. H. gives what may be called a

190 CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE


physical theory of the injury done by demons. what belongs to H. and R. respectively, from
They are represented as having sensual desires, what they found in their common original,
which, being spirits, they can gratify only by leads to the belief that H., far more nearly
incorporation with human bodies. They use than R., represents the doctrinal aspect of the
therefore the permission which the divine law original, from which the teaching of H. differs
grants them, of entering into the bodies of only by legitimate development.
men who partake of forbidden food, or who, by The Clementines are unmistakably a pro-
worshipping them, subject themselves to their duction of that sect of Ebionites which held
power and with these the union is so close,
; the book of Elkesai as sacred. For an ac-
that after death, when the demons descend to count of the sources whence our knowledge of
their natural regions of fire, the souls united this book is derived, and for the connexion of
to them are forced to accompany them, though the sect with Essenism, see Elkesai in
grievously tormented by the element in which D. C. B. (4-V0I. ed.). Almost all the doc-
the demon feels pleasure. The opposition trines ascribed to them are to be found in the
between fire and light is much dwelt on and ; Clementines e.g. the doctrine of successive
again, the water of baptism and other ablu- incarnations of Christ, and in particular the
tions is represented as having a kind of phy- identification of Christ with Adam, the re-
sical efficacy in quenching the demonic fire. quirement of the obligations of the Mosaic
All this doctrine concerning demons shews Law, the rejection however of the rite of
itself comparatively faintly in R. yet there
;
sacrifice, the rejection of certain passages both
seem indications that the doctrine as ex- of O.T. and N.T., hostility to St. Paul, ab-
pounded in H. was contained in the original stinence from flesh (H. viii. 15, xii. 6, xv. 7),
on which R. worked. It is natural to think the inculcation of repeated washing, discour-
that the earlier form is that one of which the agement of virginity, concealment of their
doctrine is most peculiar the later, that in
; sacred books from all but approved persons,
which the divergences from orthodox teaching form of adjuration by appeal to the seven
are smoothed away. Yet it is not always true witnesses, ascription of gigantic stature to the
that originality implies priority; and the angels (H. viii. 15), permission to dissemble
application of this principle has caused sonie the faith in time of persecution (R. i. 65, x.
of the parts of H. which can be shewn to be 55) ; while again the supposed derivation of
the most recent, to be accepted as belonging the book of Elkesai from the Seres is ex-
to the original. For instance, we have seen plained by R. viii. 48, where the Seres are
that the private conversation between Peter described as a nation by whom all the ob-
and his disciples in the 20th homily bears on servances on which the Ebionites laid stress
the face of it marks of interpolation yet the
;
were naturally kept, and who were con-
clearness and peculiarity of its doctrine have sequently exempt from the penalties of sick-
caused it to be set down as belonging to the ness and premature death which attended
most ancient part of the work. The same may their neglect. Ritschl regards the book of
be said of the section concerning philanthropy Elkesai as an exposition of these doctrines
at the end of the 12th homily, which, however, later than the Homilies ; but we are disposed
is wanting in the Syriac, and may be reason- to look on it as earlier than the work which
ably set down as one of the most modern parts. formed the common basis of H. and R. A
For it is an addition made by H. to the story recognition of this book is not improbably
of the recognitions as told by R. and we
; contained in a passage which is important
have already shewn that in all that relates to in reference to the use made by H. and R. of
the recognitions H. is more recent than R. their common original. The date which the
We arrive at more certain results, if, examining book of Elkesai claimed for itself was the
the sections we have named, and for which H. third year of Trajan. Whether it actually
is most responsible, we try to discover his were so old need not here be inquired, but the
favourite thoughts and forms of expression, fact that it was confessedly no older might
and so to recognize the hand of the latest seem to put it at a disadvantage in comparison
reviser in other parts of the work. Space will with the Pauline system which it rejected.
not permit such an examination here but we But its adherents defended their position by
may notice the fondness of H. for discovering
;

their doctrine of pairs —viz. that it has been


a male and female element in things, and for ever God's method to pair good and evil to-
contrasting things under the names of male gether, sending forth first the evil, then the
and female. The almost total absence of the countervailing good. Thus Cain was followed
idea from R. makes it unlikely that it could by Abel, Ishmael by Isaac, Esau by Jacob, so
have had any great prominence in the original now, Simon Magus by Peter and at the end of
;

document. The idea, however, became very the world Antichrist will be followed by Christ.
popular in the sect to which H. belonged and ; The penultimate pair enumerated takes, in
is noticed by a writer of the loth cent, as a the translation of Rufinus, a form scarcely
characteristic of some Ebionites then still re- intelligible ;but the Syriac shews that the
maining (see Hilgenfeld,iV.r.£;i:/ra Can.Recept. version given by R. did not essentially differ
iii. 156). The germ, however, of the distinc- from that of H. and that the contrasted pairs
;

tion between male and female prophecy, on predicted by Peter are a false gospel sent
which H. lays so much stress, was apparently abroad by a deceiver, and a true gospel secretly
in the original document, which disposed of disseminated after the destruction of the holy
the testimony borne by our Lord to John the place, for the rectification of the then existing
Baptist by the distinction that J[ohn was the heresies. It seems most probable that we are
greatest of the prophets born of women, but here to understand the doctrine of Paul and
not on the level of the Son of Man. The of Elkesai ; and it may be noted that the fact,
general result of an attempt to discriminate that, in this pair, gospels, not persons, are con-
CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE 191

trasted, favours the conclusion that Hippo- conversion. In both places Paul, if Paul be
lytus was mistaken in supposing Elkesai to meant, is expressly distinguished from Simon.
be the name of a person. Two other of the In the letter of Peter prefixed to the Homilies,
contrasted pairs deserve notice H. contrasts
: we cannot doubt that Paul is assailed as the
Aaron and Moses, R. the magicians and enemy who taught that the obligations of
Moses. Again, H. contrasts John the Baptist the Mosaic law were not perpetual, and who
and our Saviour, R. the tempter and our unwarrantably represented Peter himself as
Saviour. In both cases the version of H. concurring in teaching which he entirely
seems to be the original, since in that the law repudiated. There remains a single passage
of the pairs is strictly observed that an elder as the foundation of the Simon- Paulus theory.
is followed by a better younger and we can
; In the Laodicean disputation which H. makes
understand R.'s motive for alteration if he did the climax of his story, a new topic is suddenly
not share that absolute horror of the rite of introduced (xvii. 13-20), whether the evidence
sacrifice which ranked Aaron on the side of of the senses or that of supernatural vision be
evil, or that hostility to John the Baptist more trustworthy and it is made to appear
;

which shews itself elsewhere in H., as, for that Simon claims to have obtained, by means
example, in ranking Simon Magus among his of a vision of Jesus, knowledge of Him superior
disciples. There are passages in R. which to that which Peter had gained during his year
would give rise to the suspicion that he held of personal converse with Him. In this section
the same doctrines as H., but concealed the phrases are introduced which occur in the
expression of them in a book intended for the notice of the dispute at Antioch, between Peter
uninitiated, for though in H. the prmciple of and Paul, contained in the Ep. to the Gala-
an esoteric doctrine is strongly asserted, the tians. It need not be doubted, then, that in
book seems to have been written at a later this section of the Homilies the arguments
period, when concealment had been aban- nominally directed against Simon are really
doned. However, the instance last considered intended to depreciate the claims of Paul.
is one of several, where R.'s suppression of Since von Colin and Baur first took notice of
the doctrinal teaching of his original seems to the concealed object of this section, specula-
imply an actual rejection of it. tion in Germany has run wild on the identifica-
It remains to speak of that part of the Cle- tion of Paul and Simon. The theory in the
mentines to which attention has been most form now most approved will be found in the
strongly directed by modern students of the article on Simon Magus in Schenkel's Bibel-
early history of the church — their assault on Lexikon. It has been inferred that Simon was
St. Paul under the mask of Simon Magus. In in Jewish circles a pseudonym for Paul, and
the first place it may be remarked that the that all related of him is but a parody of the
school hostile to St. Paul which found expres- life of Paul. Simon as a historical character
sion in these Clementines cannot be regarded almost entirely disappears. Even the story
as the representative or continuation of the told in the Acts of the Apostles has been held
body of adversaries with whom he had to to be but a caricature of the story of Paul's
contend in his lifetime. Their connexion was bringing up to Jerusalem the collection he
with the Essenes, not the Pharisees and they
; had made, and hoping by this gift of money
themselves claimed no earlier origin than a to bribe the apostles to admit him to equal
date later than the destruction of Jerusalem, dignity. In order to account for the author
an event which would seem to have induced of the Acts admitting into his narrative the
many of the Essenes in some sort to accept section concerning Simon, explanations have
Christianity. We have seen that a theory been given which certainly have not the ad-
was devised to account for the lateness of the vantage in simplicity over that suggested by
period when what professed to be the true —
the work itself viz. that the author having
gospel opposed to St. Paul's was published. It spent seven days in Philip's house had learned
follows that whatever results can be obtained from him interesting particulars of his early
from the Clementines belong to the history of evangelical work, which he naturally inserted
the 2nd cent., not the first. The name of Paul in his history. The Simon- Paulus theory has
is mentioned neither by H. nor R. Hostility been particularly misleading in speculations
to him appears in R. in a milder form R.,; as to the literary history of the tales con-
plainly following his original, ignores St. cerning Simon. Lipsius, for instance, has set
Paul's labours among the heathen, and makes himself to consider in what way the history
St. Peter the apostle of the Gentiles and in
; of Simon could be told, so as best to serve the
one passage common to H. and R., and there- purpose of a libel on Paul ; and having thus
fore probably belonging to the earlier docu- constructed a more ingenious parody of Paul's
ment, a warning is given that the tempter who life than any which documentary evidence
had contended in vain with our Lord would shews to have been ever in circulation, he asks
afterwards send apostles of deceit, and there- us to accept this as the original form of the
fore the converts are cautioned against receiv- story of Simon. It becomes necessary, there-
ing any teacher who had not first compared his fore, to point out on how narrow a basis of fact
doctrine with that of James, lest the devil these speculations rest. To R., anti-Pauline
should send a preacher of error to them, even though he is, the idea of identifying Simon
as he had raised up Simon as an opponent to with St. Paul seems never to have occurred.
Peter. It need not be disputed that in this All through his book Paul is Paul, and Simon
passage, as well as in that concerning the Simon. The same may be said of the whole
pairs already quoted, Paul is referred to, his of the Homilies, except this Laodicean dis-
preaching being spoken of in the future tense putation, which is the part in which the latest
I

I as dramatic propriety required, since the writer has taken the greatest liberties with his
action of the story is laid at a time before his original. Before any inference can be drawn
192 CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLEMENTINE LITERATURE
from an early identification
this section as to quoted which are not found in any of our
ot Simon and Paul, it must be shewn that it present gospels. The deviations from the
belongs to the original document, and is not existing text are much smaller in R. than in
an addition of the last reviser only. The H., and it may be asserted that R. always
object of the latter may be inferred from what conforms to our present gospels in his own
he states in the form of a prediction (xvi. 21), added matter. Since it is known that the
that other heretics would arise who should Ebionites used an Aramaic gospel, which in
assert the same blasphemies against God as the main agreed with St. Matthew but with
Simon which we may take as implying that
;
considerable variations, we may conclude that
the writer has put into the mouth of Simon this was the source principally employed by
doctrines similar to those held by later heretics the author of the original. H. seems to have
against whom he had himself to contend. In used the same sources as the original but yet;

particular, this Laodicean section is strongly two things must be borne in mind before we
anti-Marcionite ; and it is just possible that assert that variations in H. from our existing
this section may have been elicited by Mar- texts prove that he had a different text before
cionite exaggeration cf the claims of Paul. him : one is the laxity with which he cites
But we own, it seems to us far more probable the O.T. the other, the fact that the story
;

that H. has here preserved a fragment of an demands that Peter should be represented as
earlier document, the full force of which it is quoting our Lord's discourses from memory
even possible he did not himself understand. and not from any written source ;and the
Further, it is altogether unproved that in this author would naturally feel himself entitled to
earlier document this particular disputation a certain amount of licence in quotations of
was directed against Simon. The original work such a kind.*
may well have included conflicts of St. Peter Place and Time of Composition of the Clemen-
with other adversaries, and in another instance line Writings.—The use made of the name of
we have seen reason to think that H. has Clement had caused Rome to be accepted as
made a mistake in transferring to Simon words the place of composition by the majority of
which in the earlier document referred to critics, but the opposite arguments urged by
another. Again, even if the earlier writer Uhlhorn appear conclusive, and to, at least,
did put Pauline features into his piicture of the original document an Eastern origin must
Simon, it no more follows that he identified be assigned. Hippolytus mentions the arrival
Simon with St. Paul than that the later writer in Rome of an Elkesaite teacher c. a.d. 220,
identified him with Marcion. The action of whose doctrines would seem to have been then
the story being laid at a date antecedent to quite novel at Rome, and not to have taken
St. Paul's conversion, it was a literary necessity root there. The scene of the story is all
that if Pauline pretensions were to be refuted, laid in the East, and the writings shew no
they must be put into the mouth of another. familiarity with the Roman church. The
At the present day history is often written ranking Clement among the disciples of Peter
with a view to its bearing on the controversies may be even said to be opposed to the earliest
of our own time but we do not imagine that
; traditions of the Roman church, which placed
a writer doubts Julius Caesar to be a historical Clement third from the apostles ; but it is
character, even though in speaking of him he quite intelligible that in foreign churches, where
may have Napoleon Bonaparte mind.
in his the epistle of Clement was habitually publicly
Now, though the author of the Clementines read in the same manner as the apostolic
has put his own words into the mouth both of epistles, Clement and the apostles might come
Simon and Peter, it is manifest that he no to be regarded as contemporaries. Clement
more doubted of the historical character of one might naturally be chosen as a typical repre-
than of the other. For Simon, his authorities sentative of the Gentile converts by an Ebion-

were (r) the account given in Acts viii. which
furnished the conception of Simon as possessed
ite who desired by his example to enforce on
the Gentile churches the duty of obedience
of magical powers (2) in all probability the
;
to the church of the circumcision. For all
account given by Justin Martyr of honours through it is James of Jerusalem, not Peter,
paid to Simon at Rome and (3) since R.
; who is represented as the supreme ruler of the
refers to the writings of Simon, it can scarcely churches. The author of the original docu-
be doubted that the author used the work ment habitually used an Aramaic version of
ascribed to Simon called the Great Announce- N.T. and there are a few phenomena which
;

ment, some of the language of which, quoted make it seem not incredible that the original
by Hippolytus, is in the Clementines put into document itself may have been \vritten in
the mouth of Simon. Hence has resulted some the same language. Uhlhorn's conjecture of
little confusion, for the heresy of the Great Eastern Syria as the place of composition
Announcement appears to have been akin to seems not improbable. The Recognitions with
the Valentinian but what the Clementine the prefatory letter relating the ordination of
;

author has added of his own is Marcionite. Clement as bp. of Rome may, however, have
Quotations from N.T. in the Clementines.- —
been a version designed for Roman circulation.
All the four gospels are quoted for since the The data for fixing the time of composition
;

publication of the conclusion of the Homilies by are but scanty. The Recognitions are quoted
Dressel, it is impossible to deny that St. John's by Origen (with, however, a division of books
gospel was employed. Epiphanius tells us differing from the present form) c. a.d. 230.
that a Hebrew translation of St. John's gospel
• In one place (xix. 3) H., having quoted some
was in use among the Ebionites. The quota-
sayings of our Lord, makes the slip of referring to
tions are principally from St. Matthew, but
theseas " Scripture." It thus clearly appears that
often with considerable verbal differences from the author used written gospels to which he ascribed
our present text and there are a few passages the authority of Scripture.
;
;

CLEMENTINE LITERATURE CLOVIS 193

This gives the latest limit for the publication entines in several works the section in Die
:

of R. We may infer that the chronicle of christliche Gnosis, pp. 300-414, may especially
Hippolytus A.D. 235 recognizes the Ep. of be mentioned. Ritschl, Die Entstehung der
Clement to James, since it counts Peter as altkatholischen Kirche, enters more largely into
first bp. of Rome, and places the episcopate the subject of the Clementines in his first ed.
of Clement at a time so early as to make his See also LipS|ius, Quellenkritik des Epiphanios
ordination by Peter possible. [Clemens Rom- and Die Quellen der Romischen Petrussage, and
anus.] It is not unreasonable to date the an interesting review by Lipsius of Lehmann's
Ep. of Clement to James at least a quarter work in the Protestantische Kirchenzeitung
of a cent, earlier, in order to allow time for its (1869), pp. 477-482. Cf. Lightfoot's Clement
ideas to gain such complete acceptance at of Rome, part i. pp. 99 ff. and 406 ff. and ;

Rome. Irenaeus is ignorant of the episcopate Harnack, Gesch. der Alt.-Ch. Lit. p. 212 ff. [g.s.]
of Peter, but ranks Clement as a contemporary Cletus or AnacletUS, " le meme que St. Clet,
of the apostles. It is likely, therefore, that comme les savants en conviennent " (UArt de
he knew the work on which the Recognitions verif. les dates, i. 218). Eusebius calls him
were founded, but not this later version. As Anencletus, and says that he was succeeded in
a limit in the other direction we have the use the see of Rome by Clement in the twelfth
of the name Faustus for one represented as a year of Domitian, having himself sat there
member of the imperial family, which points twelve years. According to this, his own con-
to a date later than the reign of Antoninus, secration would have fallen in the first year of
whose wife, and whose daughter married to Domitian, or a.d. 81 but it is variously dated
;

Marcus Aurelius, both bore the name of by others (cf. Gieseler, E. H. § 32 with note 4,
Faustina. A section (R. ix. 17-29) is identical Eng. tr.). Eusebius indeed nowhere says that
with a passage quoted by Eusebius, Praep. Ev. he succeeded Linus, or was the second bp. of
6, 10, as from the dialogues of Bardesanes. Rome yet he places him between Linus,
:

But the date of Bardesanes himself is uncer- whom he calls the first bishop, and Clement,
tain. [Bardesanes.] The date assigned by whom he calls third. Other ancient author-
Eusebius in his chronicle for his activity, a.d. ities make Clement the first bishop (see Clinton,
173, seems to need to be put later, because F. R. ii. 399). Rohrbacher, on the strength
an authority likely to be better informed, the of a list attributed to pope Liberius, places
Chronicle of Edessa, with great particularity Clement after Linus, Cletus after Clement, and
assigns for the date of his birth July 11, a.d. another pope named Anencletus after Cletus
154. Further, the dialogue cited by Eusebius (£. H. iv. 450). This Gieseler calls " the
and by R. has been now recovered from the modem Roman view." [But for this question
Syriac, and has been published in Cureton's of the succession of the Roman bishops, see
Spicilegium Syriacum (1855). From this it Lightfoot, Clement of Rome, part i. pp. 201-
appears that the dialogue does not purport 345 ;of which Bp. Westcott says (Preface to
to be written by Bardesanes himself, but by Lightfoot), " Perhaps it is not too much to say
a scholar of his, Philippus, who addresses him that the question of the order of the first five
as father and is addressed by him as son. This bps. of Rome is now finally settled."] Three
forbids us to put the dialogue at a very early spurious epistles have the name of Anacletus
period of the life of Bardesanes, and R. may affixed to them in the Pseudo-Isidorian collec-
have been the earlier. Merx (Bardesanes von tion (Migne, Pair. cxxx. 59 and seq.). [e.s.ff.]
Edessa) tries to shew that other sections also Clovis (in the chroniclers Chlodovechus, etc.,
in R. were later interpolations from Barde- modern German Ludwig, modern French
sanes ; but his arguments have quite failed Louis), son of Childeric, one of the kings of
to convince us. On the whole, a.d. 200 seems the Salian Franks, born a.d. 466, succeeded
as near an approximation as we can make to his father in 481 (Greg. Tur. ii. 43). As soon
the probable date of R. The form H. must as he reached manhood (486) he attacked
be dated later, possibly a.d. 218, the time Syagrius, " rex Romanorum " (Greg. ii. 23),
when, according to Hippolytus, the Elkesaite son of Aegidius, the isolated and independent
Alcibiades came from Apamea to Rome. representative of the Roman power in Gaul
There is little to determine very closely the (Junghans, pp. 22, 23). Syagrius was defeated,
date of the original document. If we could lay and Clovis advanced his territory from the
stress on a passage which speaks of there being Somme to the Seine, and afterwards to the
one Caesar (R. v. 19, H. x. 14), we should date Loire (Gesta Francorum, 14), was recognized
it before a.d. 161, when Marcus Aurelius shared as king by the former subjects of Syagrius
the empire with Verus and though this argu-
; (Greg. ii. 27), and transferred his capital from
ment is very far from decisive, there is nothing Tournai to Soissons [Vita S. Remigii, ap.
that actually forbids so early a date, though Bouquet, iii. 377 e). Waitz (ii. 60 m.) doubts
we could not safely name one much earlier. this (see Junghans, p. 34, n. 3). Many
The prolegomena of the earlier editors of the wars and conquests followed (Greg. ii. 27).
Clementines are collected in Migne's Patro- About A.D. 492 Clovismarried the Burgundiaa
logia. The most important monographs are princess Clotilda, a Christian and a Catholic,
von CoUn's article in Ersch and Gruber (1828), and she is said to have made many attempts
Schliemann, Die Clementinen (Hamburg, 1844) to convert her husband from idolatry (Greg,
Hilgenfeld, Die clementinischen Recognitionen ii. 29 Riickert, Culturgeschichte, i. pp. 316,
;

und Homilien (Jena, 1848); Uhlhorn, Die 317 Binding, Das Burgundisch-Romanische
;

Homilien und Recognitionen des Clemens Rom- Reich, Leipz. 1868, pp. 1x1-114, doubts the
anus (Gottingen, 1854) Lehmann, Die clement-
; value of Clotilda's work Bornhak, Gesch- ;

inische Schriften (Gotha, 1867). In these works ichte der Franken unter den Merovingern,
will be found references to other sources of Greifswald, 1863, pp. 207, 208, magnifies it).
! information. Baur has treated of the Clem- What her entreaties could not effect the crisis
13
194 CLOVIS CLOVIS
ofwar brought about. During a battle against ii. 85, note i ; and Rettberg, pp. 285-287).
the Alamanni (whether at Tolbiac or else- All questions connected with the conversion of
where, see Bornhak, p. 209, note 2 ; Waitz, Clovis are fully treated by RUckert, Cultur-
ii. 65, note 2) the Franks were hard pressed, geschichte des Deutschen Volkes in der Zeit des
and beginning to yield. Clovis raised his eyes Uebergangs aus deni Heidenthum in das Chris-
to heaven and invoked the aid of Christ. tenihum (l.eipz. 1853-1854).
Forthwith the tide of battle turned, and the The next war of Clovis was with Burgundy,
Alamanni fled. Remigius, at the instance of A.D. 500. Gundobald, the uncle of Clotilda
Clotilda, called on Clovis to fulfil his vow. and mmrderer of her parents, was defeated at
" Gladly," replied the king, " but I must first Dijon. Clovis annexed part of the Burgun-
obtain the consent of my own people." His dian dominion, and gave the rest to Godegisel,
warriors signified their assent in the well- another brother. Shortly afterwards Gundo-
known words, " Gods that die we cast away bald returned, expelled Godegisel, and appar-
from us : the god that dies not, whom Remi- ently became reconciled to Clovis, for in 507
gius preaches, we are prepared to follow." On the Burgundians helped Clovis in his expe-
Christmas Day, 496, Clovis, with his sisters dition against the Visigoths. (This alliance is
Albofleda, a heathen, and Lantechild, an not mentioned by Gregory, but see Binding,
Arian, was baptized by Remigius at Rheims. p. 194, note 659 and Richter, p. 41, note e.)
;

" Gently, Sicambrian, bow down thy head, Between 505 and 507 Clovis is said to have
worship what thou hast hitherto destroyed, been inflicted with tedious illness {Vita Sever-
destroy what thou hast hitherto worshipped," ini, Bouquet, iii. 392 b) on his recovery he
;

were the apt words of Remigius (Greg. ii. 30, immediately issued his famous declaration of
31; Vita Rem. ap.Boaquet). How important war against the Visigoths " Verily it grieves :

this conversion was in the eyes of the Catholic my soul that these Arians should hold a par1>
world of the day may be seen from the letters of Gaul with God's help let us go and con-
;

of congratulation addressed to Clovis by quer them, and reduce their territory into our
Avitus, bp. of Vienne (Bouquet, iv. 49), and hands " (Greg. ii. 37). From Paris Clovis
by pope Anastasius, who wrote both to the marched through Orleans to Tours, gave strict
king and to the bishops of Gaul (Thiel, Ep. orders for the protection of the Catholic church
Rom. Pont. pp. 624 and 634). Theodoric, the and its property {Ep. ap. Bouquet, iv. 54),
Ostrogothic king of Italy, was an Arian, met and defeated the Visigoths at Voullon or
though a tolerant one, but Euric, the Visigoth, Vougle near Poictiers, and slew king Alaric
had proclaimed himself militant and prose- with his own hand (Richter, p. 40 notes and
lytizing (Fauriel, ii. 28)
; the Burgundian and reff.). The winter of 507-508 Clovis spent at
Vandal princes were also Arian. The majority Bordeaux, carried off the Visigothic treasure
of the population of Gaul was Catholic, and from Toulouse, and reduced Angouleme and
Clovis was the only Catholic prince. (On the the surrounding territory before his return to
relation of these Arian princes to their Catholic Paris, which city henceforward he made his
subjects, see Binding, pp. 125 ff.) Whatever capital (Greg. ii. 38). That the religious ele-
may have been his motives, and every variety ment was very powerful in this war (Riickert,
has been attributed to him, from direct inspir- i. 324) is evident from the letter of Clovis to
ation of the Holy Ghost (Rettberg, Kirchen- the bishops (Bouquet, I.e.), from the vain
geschichte, i. pp. 274, 273) to the coldest political attempts which Alaric had made to confirm
calculation (Binding, pp. 111-114), Clovis must the allegiance of his Catholic and Roman sub-
have been aware that by his conversion to the jects (Richter, p. 39, note 2), and from what
Catholic faith he would make the majority of Cassiodorus (Var. iii. Ep. 1-4) tells us of
his own subjects firm in their allegiance, and the negotiations before the war. Theodoric
the Roman subjects of the Arian princes in the the Ostrogoth had proposed an alliance of the
south ill-affected towards their rulers. (An Arian German kings for the maintenance of
instance of such disaftection may be found in peace and when the Franks began to pursue
;

Greg. ii. 36.) Nor can he have htan. ignorant their victories in a fresh campaign and laid
of the political importance of the aid which siege to Aries, Theodoric interfered, sent an
he would get from the Catholic priesthood army under Ibbas, which defeated the Franks
throughout Gaul. From this point, there- and relieved Aries, and eventually agreed to a
fore, dates an increase of influence among the peace, by which Provence was annexed by the
Roman population, the foundations were laid Ostrogothic power, Septimania adhered to the
of a Roman nobility of office and intellect Visigothic kingdom of Spain, and Clovis's
capable of superseding the old Teutonic no conquest of Aquitaine was acknowledged
bility of race (Bornhak, pp. 219-221). Thus, (Binding, p. 212 and note 731). We do not
whilst from one point of view this was the know whether Clovis joined personally in this
" first step towards the world-historical union Rhone campaign. No mention of it is made
of Teutonic civilization with the Roman by Gregory. It was at Tours, on his return
church " (Richter, p. 36, note 6), on the other from Bordeaux in 508, that Clovis received a
hand, a reaction of Roman civilization against letter from the emperor Anastasius, " confer-
its Teutonic conquerors now set in, and ring upon him the consular dignity, from
modern Latin France became possible. As an which time he was habitually called consul and
immediate consequence of the conversion, a Augustus " (" ab Anastatio Imperatore codi-
body of Prankish warriors not yet converted cillos de consulatu accepit, et in basilica beati
joined Rachnachar (Vita Rem. ap. Bouquet, Martini tunica blatea indutus est et chlamyde,
iii. p. 377 c, d). Whether this was also a imponens vertice diadema, et ab ea die . . .

desertion of Clovis is doubtful (see Junghans, tanquam consul et (al. aut ') Augustus est '

p. 59). The conversion of the nation was not vocitatus," Greg. ii. 38). Much discussion
completed till long afterwards (see Waitz, has taken place as to the exact meaning of
CLOVIS COELESTINUS 195

this passage. The name of Clovis does not Coelestinus, commonly called Celestine, 42nd
appear in the consular Fasti, but in the pro- bp. of Rome, succeeded Boniface I. on Sunday,
logue to the Lex Salia he is entitled " procon- Sept. 10, 422, without any delay or contest.
sul " (Sybel, Jahrb. d. Alt. in Rheinl. iv. p. 86). He was of Roman birth, the son of Priscus.
Again, the chlamys and the diadem are the In early life he had visited Milan during the
insignia of the patriciate. Hence it has been episcopate of St. Ambrose. While deacon to
assumed by many that what was conferred on Innocent, he had written a cordial letter to
Clovis was the proconsulate and the patriciate St. Augustine, who returned a suitable reply
(Valesius, i. 299 ; Richter, pp. 40, 41 Jung- (Aug. Ep. 192). Soon after his accession to
;

hans, pp. 126-128). On the contrary, Waitz the see of Rome, Celestine received a letter
(ii. 59-61) and others {e.g. Petigny, ii. 533 ;
from Augustine {Ep. 209) on the case of one
and Bornhak, pp. 234, 235), adhering to the Antony, bp. of Fussala, 40 miles from Hippo,
exact words of Gregory, maintain that it was who had gravely misconducted himself in his
the title of consul that was conferred on Clovis. office, been compelled by a synod of bishops
The significance of the event itself is plain. to leave Pussala, and had afterwards applied
Anastasius saw the value to the empire of the to Boniface for restoration. Augustine en-
Prankish power as a counterpoise to the Ostro- treated Celestine not to impose on the people
gothic. Clovis willingly accepted any title of of Fussala, by aid of secular power, a prelate
honour by which he obtained a quasi-legal so unworthy. After this, the African bishops
title in the eyes of his Roman subjects (cf. resolved no longer to allow appeals to Rome
Hallam, Middle Ages, vol. i. note 3 on c. i.). from their country ; and when Celestine,
The well-known story of the vase of Soissons apparently in 426, wrote to them in behalf of
(Greg. ii. 27) not only shews how ill Clovis the priest Apiarius, a general council of Africa
brooked the liberty and equality of the other sent a reply begging Celestine to observe
Prankish chiefs, but reveals the most unfavour- the Nicene rule (can. 5) and not receive to

able side of his character his deceitfulness. communion those excommunicated by them.
" Dolus," however, if on the right side, is The African church thus claimed its right to
seldom an attribute of blame with the mediae- decide its own causes. They pointed out that
val chroniclers. The most discreditable deeds the Nicene council had ordered that all causes
of this character attributed to Clovis are the should be decided where they arose nor could
;

machinations by which he subjected the other anyone " believe that our God will inspire a
Prankish chiefs originally his equals, and single individual with justice, and deny it to
brought about the unification of the Prankish a large number of bishops sitting in council."
empire. Thus he suggested the murder of his That persons should be sent from Rome to
father to Sigebert, king of the Ripuarian decide causes in Africa had been " ordained by
Pranks, and when the deed was done, himself no synod" and they had proved toCelestine's
;

took possession of the kingdom (Greg. ii. 40). predecessor, by authentic copies of Nicene
King Chararich was first imprisoned, and then canons, that such a claim was wholly baseless
put to death (ib. 41 ; cf. c. 27 clam feriri, of [Cod. Can. Eccl. Afric. ad. fin. Galland, Bibl.
;

Syagrius), and likewise king Rachnachar of Patr. ix. 289).


Cambrai and his two brothers {ib. 42). Celestine was zealous against Pelagianism,
Early in 511 Clovis summoned a council of and constrained Coelestius, the companion of
32 bishops to Orleans (see Decrees ap. Sirmondi, Pelagius, to leave Italy.
Cone. Gall. i. 177). Before the close of the The affairs of eastern lUyricum occupied
year he died at the age of 45, and was buried the attention of Celestine, as of his predeces-
at Paris in the church of the Apostles (after- sors. This civil " diocese " was attached,
wards St. Genevieve's) which he and Clotilda politically, to the eastern empire but the see ;

had built. He left four sons, Theodoric the of Rome had kept a hold over its churches by
eldest (illegitimate) ; Clodomir, Childebert, committing a sort of vicarial authority to the
and Lothar, by Clotilda. see of Thessalonica, which was its head. Thus
The only first-class original authority for the Damasus is said to have made the bps. of
reign of Clovis is Gregory of Tours, Historia Thessalonica his representatives. See Pleury,
Francorum, ii. 27-43, contained in the collec- b. xviii. c. 22. Le Ouien, Or. Christ, ii. 9,
tions of Duchesne, vol. i. ; and Bouquet, thinks this an over-statement but at any
;

Recueil des Historiens, etc., vol. ii. (in the 3rd rate, he observes, Siricius (who succeeded
vol. of Bouquet are extracts from the lives of Damasus), and afterwards Innocent, gave a
the saints relating to this reign. On the delegated authority to Anysius of Thessa-
authority of Gregory see Lobell, Gregor von lonica. In A.D. 421 a collision took place
Tours und seine Zeit, pp. 320 ff. ; Monod, in between the Roman bp. Boniface and Theo-
i
the Bibliotheque de I'Ecole des hatites Etudes, dosius II., who " claimed the power of trans-

part viii. (1872); andWattenbach, Deutschlands ferring to the bp. of Constantinople that
« Geschichtsquellen im Miitelalter (3rd ed. 1873), superintendence over the bps. of Illyricum "
(
vol. i. pp. 76-83. The best monograph on the which Rome had entrusted to Thessalonica
t subject of Clovis is Junghans, Geschichte der (Pleury, xxiv. 31). But Theodosius appears
\
Frankischen Konige Childerich und Chlodovech to have yielded the point ; and Celestine
;
(Gottingen, 1857). Cf. also G. Kurth, Hist. having already " interposed " in behalf of an
' Poet, des Meroving. (Paris 1893) Prou, La IlhTian bishop named Felix, who was " in
;

Gaule Meroving. On the constitution of the peril of being crushed by factious accusers,"
kingdom of Clovis and its constitutional afterwards wrote (Cel. Ep. 3) to Perigenes of
history, see Waitz, Deutsche Verfassungs- Corinth and eight other prelates of eastern
geschichte, ii. pp. 51-71 ; and G. Richter, An- lUyricum, asserting his right, as successor of
nalen d. Deutschen Geschichte im Mittelalter, i. St. Peter, to a general oversight (" necessita-
PP- 27-32 (1873). [T.R.B.] tem de omnibus tractandi "), and directing bis
— ;

196 COELESTINUS COELESTINUS


" beloved brethren " to refer all causes to statement in his Chronicle. Palladius had but
his deputy, Rufus of Thessalonica, and not to little success, and stayed in Ireland but a
consecrate bishops, nor hold councils, without short time and there is no sufficient evidence
;

the sanction of that bishop. " Dominentur for associating the mission of his great succes-
nobis regulae," writes Celestine, " non regulis sor, St. Patrick, with Celestine or with the see
dominemur simus subject! canonibus," etc. of Rome. (See Todd's Life of St. Patrick, pp.
;

But, says Tillemont significantly, " it is 309 seq., 352, 387, etc.)
difficult to see how he practised this excellent We now turn to the part which Celestine
maxim " for by the sixth Nicene canon the took in the great doctrinal controversy raised
;

Illyrian bishops would be subject to their by Nestorius at Constantinople at the end of


several metropolitans and provincial synods 428. Celestine {Ep. 13) early in 429 received
(xiv. 150). copies of controversial discourses said to be
Another letter from Celestine [Ep. 4) was by Nestorius, and wrote on his own behalf, and
addressed, July 25, 428, " to the bishops of the on that of other Italian bishops, to Cyril of
provinces of Vienne and Narbonne, for the Alexandria, asking for information. [Cyril.]
purpose of correcting several abuses " (Fleury, Cyril purposely kept silence for a year and ;

xxiv. 56). Some bishops, he had learned, before he wrote, Celestine had received from
" surreptitiously " wore the philosophic " pal- Nestorius himself, by the hands of a man of
lium," with a girdle, by way of carrymg out high rank, named Antiochus, copies of his
Luke xii. 35. " Why not," asks Celestine, discourses, with a letter, in which Nestorius
" also hold lighted lamps and staves ? " The speaks of certain exiled Pelagians resident in
text is to be understood spiritually. This sort Constantinople and then passes on to the
;

of dress, he adds, may be retained by those controversy about the Incarnation, and de-
who dwell apart (monks), but there is no pre- scribes his opponents as Apollinarians, ete.
cedent for it in the case of bishops. " We He wrote more than once again (Mansi, iv.
ought to be distinguished from the people, not 1023), and another extant letter resumes the
by dress, but by teaching not by attire, but
; same topic.
by conduct." On other matters he comments. Celestine caused the Nestorian discourses to
Some refuse to give absolution to penitents be rendered into Latin and meanwhile re-;

even at the hour of death this is a barbarous


: ceived a letter from Cyril, accompanied by
" killing of the soul." Some consecrate lay- other translations of these documents, made
men to the episcopate. Let no one be con- at Alexandria. Thus aided, Celestine formed
secrated until he has gone through all degrees his own opinion on their theological character,
of the ministry he who would be a teacher
: and summoned a synod of bishops at the
must first be a disciple. In the appointment beginning of Aug. 430. We possess an inter-
of bishops he said that the wishes of the esting fragment of his speech on this occasion.
flock must be respected : Nullus invitis detur " I remember that Ambrose of blessed
episcopus. These words became the recognized memory, on the day of the Nativity of our
expression of a great principle of church law. Lord Jesus Christ, made the whole people sing
With this letter may be compared a short to God with one voice
one {Ep. 5), written in 429, to urge the Apulian
and Calabrian bishops to observe the canons,
'
Veni, Redemptor gentium,
Ostende partum Virginis
and not to gratify any popular wish for the Miretiir omne saeculum
consecration of a person who had not served in
;
"
Talis decet partus Deum '

the ministry. (On this subject of per saltum


consecrations, see Bingham, ii. 10, 4 seq.) (Ambros. Hymn 12 in Brev. Ambros. first
;

In the same year (429) Germanus bp. of vespers of Nativ.). " Did he say, Talis decet '

Auxerre and Lupus of Troyes were sent into partus hominem ? So, the meaning of our
'

Britain to repress Pelagianism. Prosper, in brother Cyril, in that he calls Mary Theoto- '

his Chronicle, says that Celestine sent German kos,' entirely agrees with Talis decet partus
'

to guide the Britons to Catholic faith. Con- Deum.' It was God Whom the Virgin, by her
stantius of Lyons, the biographer of German, child-bearing, brought forth, through His
whom Bede follows [H. E. i. 17), says that power Who is full of omnipotence." He pro-
German and Lupus were sent by a large synod ceeded to quote a passage from Hilary, and
of Gallic bishops. (Prosper was then in Gaul, two shorter ones from Damasus (Mansi, iv.
and ere long became Celestine's secretary : 550 ; Galland, ix. 304). The council's reso-
Constantius wrote some sixty years later, but lutions were expressed by Celestine in letters
with full access to local information.) The to Cyril and to Nestorius. The former {Ep.
accounts may be reasonably harmonized. In 11) commends CvtH's zeal in a cause which is,
German's case there was probably a special in truth, that of " Christ our God " and con- ;

commission from Celestine, in addition to that cludes by saying that unless Nestorius should,
which emanated from the Galilean synod. In within ten days, condemn his own wicked doc-
this way, apparently, Celestine, as Prosper trines by a written profession of the same faith,
afterwards wrote in another work (C. Colla- as to " the birth of Christ our God," which is
torem, 21, al. 24), " took pains to keep the held by the Roman, by the Alexandrian, by
Roman island Catholic." It will be natural the entire church, provision must be made for
to consider next Celestine's proceedings in the see of Constantinople as if vacant, and
regard to Ireland, which, says Prosper, in the Nestorius must be treated as one " separate
same sentence, he " made Christian." Two from our body." This letter was dated Aug.
years after the expedition of German he con- II, 430. Celestine wrote also to John, bp. of
secrated Palladius, and sent him to " the Antioch, Juvenal of Jerusalem, Flavian of
Scots, who believed in Christ," i.e. to the Irish, Philippi, and Rufus of Thessalonica {Ep. 12).
"as their first bishop." Such is Prosper's His meaning is evident he is not professing
:

COELESTINUS COELESTINUS 197

to act as the sole supreme judge and oracle " Idem locus, eadem causa. ..." " Let us
of Christendom, or as the mouthpiece of the be unanimous, let us do nothing by strife or
Catholic church ; he announces his resolution, vainglory." He reminds them of the words of
in concert with the Alexandrian church, to St. Paul to the " episcopi " of Ephesus, Acts
break ofi all communion with the bp. of Con- XX. 28. It was on July 10 that the three
stantinople, unless the latter retracted his deputies appeared in the council, Nestorius
heretical sentiments. Another letter was having been deposed on June 22 ; the council,
addressed to Nestorius himself {Ep. 13) : as Firmus of Caesarea told the deputies, had
its point is contained in the observation, " followed in the track " of Celestine's previous
" You have been warned once, twice —I now decision but, it must be observed, after a full
;

give you the third warning, according to the and independent examination of the evidence.
rule of St. Paul if you wish to retain com-
: The deputies on the next day heard the " acts "
munion with myself and with the bp. of of the first session read, and then affirmed the

Alexandria, affirm what he affirms confess sentence passed on Nestorius in that session,
our faith." Celestine also wrote {Ep. 14) to taking care to dwell on the dignity of the see
the clergy and laity of Constantinople, exhort- of St. Peter, while Cyril was not less careful to
ing the orthodox clergy to endure manfully, refer to them as representing " the apostolic
and to take example from St. Chrysostom and chair and the council of Western bishops."
St. Athanasius. The council wrote to Celestine as their " fellow-
For the events which followed the council of minister " {Ep. 20), giving a narrative of
Rome, see Cyril. In Nov. 430, when Theo- events, and saying that they had read and
dosius had summoned an oecumenical council affirmed the sentences formerly pronounced
to meet at Ephesus at the coming Whitsun- by him against the Pelagian heretics. They
tide, and before the Roman and Alexandrian evidently regarded him as first in dignity
resolutions had been communicated to Nes- among all bishops, but not as master or ruler
torius, the latter wrote to Celestine that the of all they " admire him for his far-reaching
;

best solution would be the adoption of the solicitude as to the interests of religion."
word " Christotokos," although he did not " It is your habit, great as you are, to approve
object to " Theotokos," if it were used so as yourself in regard to all things, and to take
not to imply " a confusion of natures." In a personal interest in the defence of the
the spring of 431 Cyril wrote again to Celestine, churches."
asking what should be done if Nestorius Nestorius, though sent away from Ephesus,
having refused to retract at the summons of had been allowed to live at his old home near

Rome and Alexandria were to retract at the Antioch. Celestine objected strongly to this,
coming synod. Celestine answered, May 7 and thought that Nestorius ought to be placed
{Ep. 16), in a tone which exhibits him in a where he could have no opportunity of spread-
more favourable light than his great Alexan- ing his opinions. The birthplace of the
drian colleague, " I am anxious for the salva- Christian name is beset by a pestilent " di-
tion of him who is perishing, provided that he sease." As for Nestorius's adherents, he
is willing to own himself sick : if not, let our thinks, there are many points for consideration,
previous decisions stand." Next day, May 8, and that a distinction should be drawn between
Celestine wrote instructions for the three per- heresiarchs and their followers. The latter
sons whom he was sending to represent him " should have opportunity of recovering their
at the council {Ep. 17). The substance was, position on repentance." The consecrators of
" When you reach Ephesus, consult Cyril in Maximian appeared to him to have passed a
everything, and do what he thinks best. But too indiscriminating sentence against all Nes-
if the council should be over when you arrive, torianizing bishops, and Celestine wished to
and Cyril gone to Constantinople {i.e. to con- moderate their zeal. He also wrote {Ep. 23)
secrate a new bishop), you must go thither to Theodosius, extravagantly lauding his acts
also, and present to the emperor the letter in behalf of orthodoxy, speaking highly of
which you will be charged with for him. If Maximian, and hinting that Nestorius ought
you find matters still unsettled, you will be to be sent into distant exile.
guided by circumstances as to the course " One of Celestine's last actions," says Tille-
which, in conjunction with Cyril, you should mont, xiv. 156, " was his defence of the
take." On the same day Celestine wrote the memory of St. Augustine as a teacher, against
most remarkable of his letters, that addressed the semi-Pelagians of Gaul. He wrote to
to the council of Ephesus {Ep. 18), which was Venerius, bp. of Marseilles, and five other
afterwards read, first in Latin, then in a Greek Gallic prelates, urging them not to be silent.
translation, at the second sitting of the council When presbyters spoke rashly and conten-
(see Mansi, iv. 1283). Celestine, citing Matt, tiously, it was not seemly that bishops should
xviii. 20, adds, " Christ was present in the allow their subordinates '
to claim the first
company of apostles when they taught what place in teaching,' especially when they raised
He had taught them. This duty of preaching their voices against Augustine of holy mem-
'

has been entrusted to all the Lord's priests in ory " {Ep. 21). The nine articles on the
'

common, for by right of inheritance are we doctrine of grace appended to this letter are
bound to undertake this solicitude. Let us not by Celestine (see note to Oxf. ed. of Fleury,
act now with a common exertion, that we may iii. p. 143)-
preserve what was entrusted to us and has Celestine is described by Socrates (vii. 11) as
been retained through succession from the having treated the Novatianists of Rome with
apostles {per apostolicam successionem) to this harshness, taken away their churches, and
very day." Celestine then insists on those obliged their bishop Rusticola to hold his
recollections of the pastoral epistles which the services in private houses. Celestine died
place of the council's meeting should inspire. on or about July 26, 432 (Tillemont, xiv. 738),
— —

198 COELESTIUS COLLUTHUS


and was succeeded by Sixtus III. Hefele,approximation of the two religious bodies, but
Cone. Gesch. ed. 2, pp. 164 ff. [w.b.] also such sects as indicated, by their forms and
Coelestius occupies a unique position among doctrines, the intention of presenting a com-
the Hibernian Scots, as he taught not the faith, promise with the truth. St. Augustine
but heresy. The general belief is that be was (Op. ii. Ep. xliv. cap. vi. § 13, ed. Migne) wrote
a native of Ireland, of noble birth, and, in early to the "Elder" of one of these sects, the
years, of singular piety. About a.d. 405 he is Coelicolae, inviting him to a conference.
found attached to Pelagius at Rome, and the Edicts of Theodosius and Honorius denounced
names of these two figure largely in the history the " new doctrine " of the sect, which was
of the church, till they are finally condemned said to be marked by " new and unwonted
in the Ephesine council, a.d. 431. Coelestius audacity," and to be nothing else than a " new
had for some time studied law, and then crime of superstition " [Cod. Theod. xvi. t. v.
become a monk, when his speculations upon viii. X. Cod. Justin, i. tit. ix.). Happily there
the conditions of grace and nature attracted is reason to believe that kinder counsels mod-
attention, as he affirmed the leading points of erated the severity of such intolerance (Gratz,
what were afterwards known as the Pelagian p. 386 seq. ; Levysohn, Diss. Inattguralis de
heresy upon the fall of man and the need of Jud. sub Caesar Conditione, pp. 4 seq.).
supernatural assistance, in effect denying both. It is difficult to ascertain precisely the views
These errors he had partly learned, as he said, of the Coelicolae. In one edict they are
from a holy presbyter, Rufinus, of whom classed with the Jews and the Samaritans, in
nothing else is known. From Rome, on the a second with the Jews only. But it would be
approach of the Goths, he passed to Sicily, a mistake to consider them simply Jews. The
and thence to Carthage by a council at Car- Romans, it is well known, called the Jews
;

thage, under Aurelius the bishop, his teaching worshippers of idols through a mistaken notiofi
was condemned, a.d. 412, though St. Augus- that the Jewish use of the word " Heaven " for
tine of Hippo had not yet taken up the contro- " God " (Buxtorf, Lex. Rabb. s.v. Q'pt;*, p.
versy against him. He soon after retired to 2440 ;
Jost, Gesch. d. Judcnthums, i. 303)
Ephesus, where he obtained the priesthood indicated the worship of some created embodi-
which he had sought in vain at Carthage. On ment of heaven (Vitringa, de Synag. i. 229).
an appeal to pope Zosimus, a.d. 417, he pre- The Coelicolae proper would therefore be easily
sented his teaching in such a light as to procure included by the Romans under the one general
acquittal before the pope, who, however, in the title " Jews." From St. Augustine's letter it
following year saw good reason to condemn would seem that the Coelicolae used a baptism
him. At Carthage he always met with a deter- which he counted sacrilege i.e. they probably
mined opposition, and at Constantinople and combined a Christian form of baptism with the
Rome both the imperial and the ecclesiastical Jewish rite of circumcision. Such a compro-
powers were finally arrayed against him. mise would appear most objectionable and
After the condemnation of the doctrines of dangerous to St. Augustine. If, moreover, as
Pelagius by the oecumenical council at Ephe- their name may indicate, the Coelicolae openly
sus, Coelestius passed from sight. His chief professed their adhesion to the Jewish worship
opponents were St. Augustine and St. Jerome of the One God and rejected the Christian
Mosheim, Eccl. Hist. i. cent. v. c. 23 seq. ;
doctrine of the Trinity, this would be an error
Gennadius, de Script. Eccl. c. 44 Robertson, for which their abhorrence of pagan forms of
;

Ch. Hist. i. B. ii. c. 8 ; O'Conor, Rer. Hih. idolatry would not compensate.
Scrip, iv. 97 n.
; Gieseler, i. 2 Dupin, Htst. Ch.
; More than this it seems impossible to ascer-
cent. V. c. 2. [Pelagius ;Zosimus.] [j.g.] tain. The Coelicolae of Africa, like their
CoeliOOlae. The death of Julian (a.d. 363) congeners the Oeoo-e/Sets of Phoenicia and
was followed by a reaction in favour of the Palestine, and the Hypsistarii of Cappadocia,
Christians and against the Jews. The fierce were soon stamped or died out. J. A. Schmid,
bitterness of the edicts of Constantine and Hist. Coelicolarum C. G. F. Walch, Hist.
;

Constantius was never perhaps renewed, but Patriarcharum Jud. pp. 5-8 Bingham, Orig.
;

the decrees of Theodosius the Great (379-395) Eccles. vii. 271 Niedner, A'. G. p. 321 n. (1866)
; ;

and his son Honorius (395-423) were suffi- Hase, K.G.p. 121 Hasse-Kohler, K. G. i. 103
: ;

ciently strong and cruel to make it evident Herzog, 7v. E. s.v. " Himmelsanbeter." [j.m.f.]
how the Roman emperors were influenced, Colluthus (2), presbyter and founder of a sect
both theologically and politically. The at Alexandria early in the 4th cent. He claimed
Christians convinced themselves that a stand (on what grounds it is unknown) to exercise
must be made more earnestly than ever against episcopal functions but the council of Alex-
;

any heresy which would seduce their members andria under Hosius (a.d. 324) decided that he
in the direction of either Judaism or paganism. was only a presbyter, from which it was held
The possible confusion of Christianity with to follow necessarily that Ischyras and others
either was by all means to be avoided. Most ordained by him were only laymen (Ath.
especially should this be the case as regarded Apol. cont. Arian. 12, 75-77, 80, pp. 106, 152).
Judaism. The scandal at Antioch which roused The passages cited mention also a sect of
the holy indignation of St. Chrysostom Colluthians. Bp. Alexander, in a letter pre-
Christian ladies frequenting the synagogues served by Theodoret (Ecc. Hist. i. 4), seems to
and observing the Jewish festivals. Christian imply that Colluthus commenced his schis-
men bringing their lawsuits by preference matical proceedings before Arius had separated
before the judges of Israel (Gratz, Gesch. d. from the church. A phrase used by Alexander
Juden, iv. 315) —
found its reflection in many (XpicTTe/inropeia) has been imderstood by Vale-
of the chief centres of the Eastern and Western sius to charge Colluthus with taking money
empires. Hence the effort became more and for conferring orders. Valesius also infers
more strenuous to suppress not only such open that the cause of Colluthus's separation was
COLLYRIDIANS COLUMBA COLUMCILLE 199

impatience that Alexander had not taken buted to him in Ireland, his chief favourites
stronger measures against Arianism. The being Durrow and Derry. The reasons usually
name Colluthus is the first among those pres- given for his afterwards leaving Ireland are
byters who subscribed to Alexander's condem- various. But whatever they may have been,
nation of Arius (Gelas. Cyzic. ii. 3). These he is said to have used his influence to excite
authorities accuse Colluthus of schism, not a quarrel between the families of the north
heresy ; as is also indicated by the mildness and south HyNeill, and the consequence was
of the action of the council, which would prob- the battle fought in the barony of Carberry,
ably have excommunicated him had he been between Drumcliff and Sligo, on the borders of
deeply tainted with erroneous doctrine. Ulster and Connaught, a.d. 561, and gained
Epiphanius mentions in general terms (Haer. by the Neills of the North, the party of St.
69, 728) that Colluthus taught some perverse Columba. In consequence of St. Coluraba's
things, and founded a sect, which was soon participation in this quarrel, a synod was
dispersed. The first to give Colluthus a assembled at Teltown in Meath to excommu-
separate heading in heretical lists is Philas- nicate him for his share in shedding Christian
trius (79), followed by Augustine and later blood, and if the sentence of excommunication
heresiologists. Philastrius charges him with was not actually pronounced, it was owing to
contradicting Is. xlv. 7, by teaching that God the exertions of St. Brendan of Birr and bp.
did not make evil. Tillemont, vi. 231 Walch,
; Finnian of Moville on his behalf. Whether by
Hist, der Ketz. iv. 502 ; Harnack, Alt. Chr. Lit. the charge of the synod of Teltown, that he
i. 480. [G.S.] must w'n as many souls to Christ by his preach-
Collyridians. Under this name Epiphanius ing as lives were lost at Cul-Dreimhne, or
(Haer. 79) assails certain women who had through his own feeling of remorse, or his
brought from Thrace into Arabia the practice great desire for the conversion of the heathen
of performing on certain days rites in honour he left Ireland in 563, being 42 years old, and,
of the Blessed Virgin, the chief being the offer- traversing the sea in a currach of wickerwork
ing of a cake (KoXKvpls), and the partaking of it covered with hides, landed with his 12 com-
by the worshippers. Epiphanius condemns panions on the small island of I, Hy, I-colm-
their conduct because (a) women ought not to kille, lova, or lona, situated about 2 miles
offer sacrifice, and (b) Mary is to be honoured, off the S.W. extremity of Mull in Argyllshire.
God only to be worshipped. The name Colly- There, on the border land between the Picts
ris (or kindred forms) is to be found in the and Scots, and favoured by both, St. Columba
LXX translation of Lev. vii. 12, viii. 26 ;2 founded his monastery, the centre from which
Sam. vi. 19, xiii. 68 ; and the word passed he and his followers evangelized the Picts and
thence into the Latin versions. [g.s.] taught more carefully the Scots, who were
Columba (1) Columcille, June 9. The life, already Christians at least in name. Hy was
character, and work of this saint have been henceforth his chief abode, but he frequently
exhaustively treated by an Irish and a French left it for Scotland, where he founded many
author. Reeves and Montalembert. St. Columba churches, penetrating N. even to Inverness, and
was the son of Fedhlimidh, son of Fergus probably farther, and E. into Buchan, Aber-
Cennfada, and thus descended from Niall of the deenshire, sending his disciples where he him-
Nine Hostages, monarch of Ireland, his great- self had not leisure to go. His connexion with
great-grandfather. Born at Gartan, a wild Ireland was not broken ; and in 575 he
district in co. Donegal, on Dec. 7, most probably attended the synod of Drumceatt, with his
in 521, he was baptized at Tulach-Dubhglaise cousin king Aidan of Dalriada, whom he had
(now Temple-Douglas, about halfway between crowned in lona in 574. From lona as a
Gartan and Letterkenny) under the name, first,
, centre he established Christianity on a firm
of Crimthann (wolf), and then of Colum (dove), basis to the N. of the Tay and Clyde. Unfor-
to which was afterwards added the suffix ctlle, tunately, valuable as St. Adamnan's Life of
as some say, from his close attendance at the St. Cohunba is, it is written rather to extol its
church of his youthful sojourn, and as others, subject than to present a picture of the time,
from the many communities founded and and so gives little chronological sequence to
governed by him. His chief instructor was the events of the thirty years and upwards of
bp. Finnian of Moville (by whom he was or- his sojourn in lona. We gather, however,
dained deacon). While at Clonard with St. that in his monastery he was indefatigable in
Finnian he was ordained to the priesthood by prayer, teaching, study, and transcription of
bp. Etchen of Clonfad, to whom he was sent the Scriptures ;
people came to him from all
by St. Finnian for that purpose. Why he was quarters, some for bodily aid, but most for
never raised to the episcopate is a matter of spiritual needs and soon smaller societies
;

speculation : in the Scholia on the Felire of had to be formed, as at Hinba (one of the
St. Aengits the Ciildee there is a legend relating Garveloch Islands), Tyree, etc., for the re-
how the order of the priesthood was conferred quirements of the monastery. He visited
by mistake in place of that of the episcopate king Bruide at Craig-Phadrick, beside Inver-
(Todd, St. Patrick, 70-71 ;Book of Obits of ness, and established the monastery of Deer
C. C. Dublin, Dubl. 1844, p. liv. ;Colgan, Acta in the N.E. corner of Aberdeenshire, where he
SS. 306 n''). Bp. Lloyd supposes a political left St. Drostan, so that his churches are traced
reason, and Lanigan thinks he applied only for all over the N. of Scotland {Book of Deer, pref.).
the office of chorepiscopus. But Dr. Reeves He also frequently visited Ireland on matters
is of opinion that he really shrank from the connected with his monasteries, the superin-
responsibilities and many obligations of the tendence of which he retained to the last. He
highest ecclesiastical rank. In and about a.d. manifested the greatest favour for the bards
544 we have probably to place the many and national poetry of his country, being him-
ecclesiastical and monastic foundations attri- self accounted one of the poets of Ireland, and

200 COLUMBANUS COLUMBANUS


poems attributed to him are preserved and adding the Rule of St. Columbanus in ten
quoted by Dr. Reeves and Montalembert (see chaps., a short Homily by the saint on the
also Misc. Arch. Soc. i seq.)- In a.d. 593 he fallaciousness of human life, and some car-
seems to have been visited by sickness, and rnina (ib. 403-414). The fullest account of his
the angels sent for his soul were stayed but for life, works, and writings is in Fleming's Col-
a time. As the time approached, and the lectanea Sacra (fol. Lovan. 1667), which in-
infirmities of age were weighing upon him, he cludes Jonas's Life and St. Columbanus's
made all preparations for his departure, bless- writings. His writings are also in Bibl. Mag.
ing his monastery, visiting the old scenes, and Vet. Pat. vol. viii. (Paris, 1644), and Bibl. Max.
taking his farewell of even the brute beasts Vet. Pat. vol. xii. (Lyons, 1677). His poems
about the monastery. On a Sat. afternoon he were first printed by Goldastus (Paraen. Vet.
was transcribing the 34th Psalm (Ps. xxxiii. pars. i. 1604). Wright {Biog. Brit. Lit. 157
E.V.), and coming to the verse, " They who seq.) gives useful particulars of the editions of
seek the Lord shall want no manner of thing his writings.
that is good," he said, " Here I must stop St. Columbanus was born in Leinster in or
at the end of this page ; what follows let about A.D. 543, the year in which Benedict,
Baithen write." He then left his cell to at- his great monastic predecessor, died at Monte
tend vespers, and, returning at their close, lay Cassino. His chief training was in the monas-
down on his couch of stone, and gave his last tery of Bangor, on the coast of Down, under
injunctions to Baithen, till the bell at mid- the eye of St. Comgall, where he accepted the
night called them to the nocturnal office. St. monastic vows and habit. At the age, most
Columba was the first to enter the oratory, probably, of a little over forty, he was seized
and when the brethren followed with lights with a desire to preach the Gospel beyond
they found the saint prostrate before the altar, the limits of Ireland, and with 12 companions'
and he soon passed away, with a sweet smile crossed over to France, c. a.d. 585, making a
upon his face, as though he had merely fallen short visit to Britain as he went. For several
into a gentle sleep. This, according to Dr. years he traversed the country, teaching the
Reeves's computation, was early in the morn- faith, but apparently without building any
ing of Sun. June 9, 597. Ireland justly monastery, till, coming to Burgundy at the
mourned for one of the best of her sons Scot-
;
solicitations of Gontran the king, he took up
land for one of her greatest benefactors. The his abode in a deserted part of the Vosges
Life of St. Columba, written by Adamnan, mountains. He first chose the ruined Roman
ninth Abbot of that Monastery, by W. Reeves, fort of Anagrates, now Annegray, a hamlet of
D.D. (Dubl. 1857) a more modern ed. giving
; the commune of Faucogney (Haute-Saone) ;

Lat. text ed. with intro., notes, glossary, and then, needing a larger foundation, removed,
trans, by Dr. J. T. Fowler (Oxf. Univ. Press) ;
A.D. 590 or 591, to the ruins of the ancient
Les Moines d'Occident, par le Comte de Monta- Luxovium, about 8 miles from Annegray,
lembert, vol. iii. (Paris, 1868). See also The and established his celebrated monastery of
Life of St. Columba, ed. by John Smith, D.D. Luxeuil, on the confines of Burgundy and
(Edinb. 1798). In his preface Dr. Reeves gives Austrasia. But soon he had to erect another
a full bibliographical account of the Irish and monastic establishment at Fontaines, or Fon-
Latin Acts and Life of St. Columba, with a tenay, and divide his monks among these
notice of the MSS., codices, authors, and edd. houses. Over each house he placed a superior,
Cf. Lanigan, Eccl. Hist. Ir. ii. 107. [j-G.] who yet was subordinate to himself, and for
Columba occupies in missionary history the their management he drew up his well-known
entire generation preceding the arrival of Rule, derived no doubt in great measure from
Augustine (a.d. 597). The Celtic apostle of his master St. Comgall, and perhaps to some
Caledonia died the very year in which the extent from St. Benedict of Monte Cassino.
Roman mission set foot in the south of Britain. The great principle of this Rule was obedience,
The first abbat of lona laboured much longer, absolute and unreserved and the next was
;

in a far wider sphere, and personally with constant and severe labour, to subdue the
more success, as well as prodigiously more flesh, exercise the will in daily self-denial, and
romance, than the first archbp. of Canterbury. set an example of industry in cultivation of
[Adamnan.] [c.h.] the soil. The least deviation from the Rule
Columbanus, abbat of Luxeuil and Bobbie, entailed a definite corporal punishment, or a
Nov. 21. On this day, in the Mart. Doneg. severer form of fast as laid down in the Peni-
(by Todd and Reeves, 315), is the entry tential (see the Rule in Messingham, u.s.,
" Columban, abbat, who was in Italy." Thus Fleming, u.s., and Max Bibl. Vet. Pair. tom.
simply does the Irish calendar refer to an Irish- xii. Lyons, 1677 and on it see Montalembert,
;

man famous in France, Switzerland, and Italy, Monks of the West, ii. 447 seq. Lanigan,
;

the great champion of public morals at a cruel Eccl. Hist. Ir. ii. 267-269 Neander, Gen. Ch.
;

and profligate court, the zealous preacher of Hist. V. 36, 37; Ussher, Eccl. Ant. c. 17, wks.
the Gospel in lands where it had been all but vi. 484 seq. Mabillon, Ann. Bened. lib. viii.
;

forgotten, and the pious founder of monas- sect. 17). For 20 years in the wooded and all
teries. His life, ^vritten with great care and but inaccessible defiles of the Vosges moun-
minuteness by Jonas, of Susa in Piedmont, a tains St. Columbanus laboured with his
monk of his monastery at Bobbio, in the time monks, and all classes of men gathered round
of Attala and Eustace, his immediate succes- him, notwithstanding the severe discipline.
sors, is now pub. by Mabillon (in Acta SS. His own inclination was always to retire into
Ord. St. Bened. tom ii. sec. ii. 2-26), and by the wood and caves and hold unrestrained
Messingham (Flor. Ins. Sand. 219-239), who communion with God but besides the claims
;

appends the account of miracles omitted by of his monasteries. Christian zeal and charity
Jonas, and other additions {ib. 239-254), also drew him forth. He excited against himself
COLUMBANUS COMGALL 201

strong feeling among the Gallican clergy and his writings St. Columbanus everywhere shews
in the Burgundian court. A worldly priest- sound judgment, solid ecclesiastical learning,
hood feltthe reproach of his exceeding earnest- elegant taste, and deep spiritual discernment,
ness and self-denial, and his pure severity was which says much for the man and for the
a constant accusation of loss of love and truth school in which he was educated. This is well
in them. Moreover, he carried with him the pointed out by Moore in his Htst. of Ireland
peculiar rites and usages of his Irish mother- (i. p. 267). [J-G.]
church the Irish mode of computing Easter,
; It is the great distinction of Columbanus, as
the Irish tonsure, and the " Cursus Scot- Neander has observed, that he set the example
orum " which he had received from St. Com- at the end of the 6th cent, of that missionary
gall. This gave great offence to the Gallo- enterprise in remote countries of Europe
Frank clergy, and in 602 he was arraigned which was afterwards so largely followed up
before a synod, where he defended himself from England and Ireland, as the names of
boldly, pleading that if error there was it was Cilian, Wilfrid, Willebrord,Boniface, Willi-
not his, but had been received from his fathers, bald, Willehad, remind Colonies of pious
us.
and he asked but the licence " to live in silence, monks journeyed forth under the leadership of
in peace and in charity, as I have lived for 12 able abbats, carrying the light of Christianity
years, beside the bones of my 17 departed through the dangerous wilds of continental
brethren." At the same time he wrote to heathendom. It was about 12 years before
pope Gregory the Great several letters on the the arrival of the Roman mission in England
subject, as afterwards to pope Boniface IV., (a.d. 597), and the same length of time before
but with what immediate result we know not, the death of Columba the apostle of Caledonia,
though the haughty bearing and generally that Columbanus, fired perhaps by the example
independent tone, in words and letters, of of this energetic missionary, passed over into
" Columbanus the sinner " were little calcu- Gaul.
lated to propitiate the favour of bishops or Columbanus's foundation of Luxeuil
popes ;
while Gregory's very friendly con- achieved as great a celebrity as his Rule, and
nexion with queen Brunehauit would make a more enduring one. It became the parent
that pope give little heed to the appeals of the of numerous streams of monastic colonies,
stranger whom she disliked. But he received which spread through both Burgundies, Raur-
great opposition from the Burgundian court. acia (the ancient bishopric of Basel), Neustria,
Thierry II., called also Theodoric, was under Champagne, Ponthieu, and the Morini. Lux-
age, and his grandmother Brunehauit ruled in euil was, in short, as Montalembert expresses
violent and arbitrary fashion, and encouraged it, the monastic capital of Gaul, as well as
the young king in every form of vice, that she the first school in Christendom, a nursery of
might retain the control of the kingdom. bishops and saints ;while Bobbio, although
This open profligacy St. Columbanus reproved for so brief a period under the government of
by word and writing, and thus incurred the its founder, became a stronghold of orthodoxy
bitterest enmity of the king, and speciallyof the against the Arians, and long remained a school
queen-mother. Gifts and flattery proving in of learning for North Italy.
vain, he was first carried prisoner to Besanfon, The works of Columbanus contained in
and finally banished from the kingdom, a.d. Fleming's Collectanea Sacra (Lovanii, 1667)
610. He departed from Luxeuil after 20 are as follows. Prose : —
I. Regula Monastica,
years' labour there, never to return. With in 10 short chaps. II. Regula Coenobialis
his Irish monks he eventually arrived at the Fratrum, sive Liber de Quotidianis Poenitentiis
Lake of Constance. First he came to Arbon Monachormn, in 15 chaps. III. Sermones sive
on its W. coast then, hearing of the ruins of
; Instructiones Variae, 17 discourses, the first
Bregentium, now Bregenz, at its S.E. corner, being " de Deo Uno et Trino," and the last,
he went thither with St. Gall and his other " Quod per Viam Humilitatis et Obedientiae
monks, and spent three years preaching to Deus quaerendus et sequendus sit." IV. Liber
the people, and contending with privation and seu Tractatus de Modo seu Mensura Poeni-
difficulty. When Bregenz was brought under tentiarum, the second title being de Poeniten-
the power of Burgundy, St. Columbanus had tiarum Mensura Taxanda. It prescribes pen-
again to flee, and leaving St. Gall at Bregenz ances for various sins. V. Instructio de Octo
he himself, with only one disciple, passed Vitiis Principalibus, less than a column in
S. across the Alps into Lombardy, where he length. The vitia are gula, fornicatio, cupid-
was honourably received by king Agilulf. At itas, ira, tristitia, acedia, vana gloria, superbia.
Milan he was soon engaged in a controversy VI. Five Epistolae Aliquot ad Diversos : (i)
with the many Arians of Lombardy, and about " ad Bonifacium IV." (2) ;
" ad Patres
this time wrote to the pope Boniface IV. at the Synodi cujusdam Gallicanae super Quaestione
suggestion of king Agilulf and his queen Theo- Paschae Congregatae " (3);
" ad Discipulos
delind. Agilulf, in 613, presented Colum- et Monachos suos " (4)
" ad Bonifacium
;

banus with a district in the wild gorges of the Papam " (5) "ad S. Gregorium Papam."
;

Apennines, between Genoa and Milan, not far These are especially interesting for the infor-
from the Trebbia, and there he built his cele- mation they give on the dispute between the
brated monastery of Bobbio, and there, Nov. 2t, Roman and Irish churches. In reference to
615, calmly resigned his spirit. For his life(i), see BoNiFACius IV. The poetical works,
and times, see Lanigan, Ecd. Hist. Ir. ii. c. PoemataQuaedam, occupyabout 8 pp. foL, rang-
13 Ussher, Eccl. Ant. cc. xv. xvii. Ind. Chron. ing in length from 4 lines to 164. The metres
; ;

A.D. 589, 614 Montalembert, Monks of the are both classical and medieval.
; [c.H.]
West, ii. bk. vii. Butler, Lives of the SS. xi.
; ComgalljOne of the most prominent leaders
435 seq. Neander, Gen. Ch. Hist. v. 35 seq.
; of monasticism in Ireland, said to have had
;

Milman, Hist. Lat. Christ, ii. bk, iv. c. 5. In as many as 3,000 monks under hiro at one
;

202 COMMODIANUS COMMODUS


time in Bangor and affiliated houses. He a heathen {Instruct. Praef. 5, § xxvi. 24), he
was a native of Mourne, now Magheramorne, was converted by the perusal of the Scriptures
in the co. of Antrim, and on the shore of (Praef. 6), and if the words " Explicit tractatus
Lough Lame. He was probably born a.d. 517 sancti Episcopi ." discovered on the MS.
. .

(Reeves). After teaching for some years of the Carmen Apologeticum by Pitra, may be
he founded in 558 his great monastery at taken to refer to the author of the poem, who,
Bangor, in the Ards of Ulster and co. of from internal evidence, is conclusively proved
Down. Hither multitudes flocked from all to have been Commodian, it would seem that
quarters, and for it and kindred institutions he ultimately became a bishop.
he drew up a Rule which was considered one His works (a trans, of which is given in the
of the chief ones of Ireland. His most noted Ante-Nicene Lib.), though utterly valueless as
disciples at Bangor were Cormac, son of Diar- literature, are of considerable interest in the
maid and king of South Leinster, who in his history of the Latin language as showing that
old age abdicated and became a monk, as is the change had already commenced which
related in the Life of St. Fintan and St. resulted in the formation of the Romance lan-
;

Columbanus, abbot of Luxeuil and Bobbio. guages.


[COLUMBANUS.] After ruling the monastery The Instructions are in Migne's Patr. Lat.
of Bangor and its dependencies for " 10 days, vol. V. the Apology in Pitra's Spicilegium
;

3 months and 50 years," as the calendars say, Solismense, vol. i. [e.m.y.]


but about 44 years according to computation, Commodus, a.d. 180-193. The monstrous
St. Comgall died at Bangor on May 10, a.d. vices of this degenerate son of Marcus Aurelius
602, aged 85, having received his viaticum brought at least one counterbalancing advan-
from St. Fiachra (Feb. 8) of Congbail. He is tage. The persecutions of his father's reign
justly reckoned among the Fathers of the Irish ceased for a time in his. The popular feeling
church. He was buried at Bangor. See against the Christians, though it still con-
further Lanigan, Eccl. Hist. Ir. ii. c. 10 tinued, was no longer heightened and directed
Reeves, Adamnan, pass, and Eccl. Ant. pass. ;
by the action of the Imperial government, and
Ussher, Eccl. Ant. cc. 13-17, wks. v. vi., Ind. the result was a marked increase of numbers.
Chr. A.D. 456, 516 ; Bp. Forbes, Kal. Scott. Many rich and noble, with their households and
Saints, 108-110. His dedications in Scotland kindred, professed themselves Christians (Eus.
were at Durris, Kincardineshire, and possibly H. E. V. 21), even in the emperor's palace,
Dercongal, or Drumcongal, now Holywood, in but it is uncertain whether they were officers,
Galloway (Forbes, M.S.). [j-c] freedmen, or slaves (Iren. adv. Haer. iv. 30).
Comniodianus, the author of two Latin Marcia, the favourite mistress of the emperor,
poems. Instructions adversus Gentium Deos is said by Dio Cassius (Ixxii. 4) or Xiphilinus
pro Christiana Disciplina, and Carmen Apolo- writing in his name, to have used her influence
geticum adversus Judaeos et Gentes. His In- with Commodus in their favour and to have
structions are included " inter apocrypha " in done them much good service. The strange
a synodal decree of Gelasius (Concil. tom. iv.), history of Callistus in the Refutation of all
probably because of certain heterodox state- Heresies attributed to Hippolytus (ix. 6)
ments respecting Antichrist, the Millennium, throws fresh light on Marcia's connexion with
and the First Resurrection. In what age he the Christian church at Rome. The epithet
lived has been much disputed. Internal evi- by which he describes her as a " God-loving
dence in the poem shews that the author lived woman " may be, as Dr. Wordsworth sug-
in days of persecution. The style of the gested, ironical but it is clear that she
;

Instructions points to the age of Cyprian, with was in frequent communication with the
whose works they have more than once been officers of the church. Callistus had been
edited. There is an allusion to the Novatian brought before Fuscianus, the city prefect,
Schism (§ xlvii. ad fin.), and the language of charged with disturbing a synagogue of the
§ Hi. seems to be aimed against the
" Thurifi- Jews, and was sentenced to hard labour in the
cati " and " Libellatici " of the 3rd cent. In mines of Sardinia. Marcia sent for Victor, a
§ Ixvi. 12 a " subdola pax " is mentioned, bishop of the church, asked what Christians
which Cave refers to the temporary quiet en- were suffering for their faith in Sardinia, and
joyed by the Christians under Gallieims, after obtained from Commodus an order of release.
the Decian and before the Aurelian persecu- The order was given to an eimuch, Hyacinth-
tion. Other expressions (e.g. agonia propin- us, who carried it to Sardinia, and obtained
qua, § liii. 10) clearly point to the expectation the liberation of Callistus and others, alleging
of fresh suffering. But the most important his own influence with Marcia as his warrant,
passage as affecting the date of the poem is though the name of Callistus had not been
one in which the author upbraids the Gentiles included in the list. The narrative clearly
for perseverance in unbelief, though Christian- implies that Hyacinthus was a Christian.
ity has prevailed for 200 years (§ vi. 2), and Thus some Christians had, as such, been
this, which, singularly enough, seems to have condemned to exile and persecutions, though
;

escaped the notice of the earlier critics, must less frequent, had not altogether ceased. One
be held to fix the date of Commodian as ap- sufferer of the time takes his place in the list
proximately A.D. 250. The barbarity of his of martyrs. ApoUonius, a Roman citizen of
style, and the peculiarity of certain words (e.g. distinction, perhaps a senator, of high repute
Zabulo, Zacones), led Rigault to infer that he for philosophical culture, was accused before
was of African extraction. He applies to him- Perennius, the prefect of the city, by one of
self the epithet " Gazaeus," but this probably his own slaves. In accordance with an
refers to his dependence upon the treasury of imperial edict sentencing informers, in such
the church {gazophylacium) for support, and cases, to death even when the accused was
not to any connexion with Gaza. Originally found guilty, the slave had his legs broken.
— —

CONSTANS I. CONSTANTINUS I. 203

Apollonius delivered before the senate an Caesars are, as might be expected, unfriendly
elaborate Apologia for his faith. By what and satirical. The first vol. of the Bonn ed.
Eusebius speaks of as an ancient law (possibly of the Byzantine historians contains the frag-
the edict of Trajan) he was beheaded (H. E. ments of Eunapius, Priscus, Dexippus, etc.,
V. 2l). [E.H.P.] but these are of little moment, as are the
Constans I., the youngest of the three sons extracts from Praxagoras in Photius, Cod. 62.
of Constantine the Great, was born c. 320 and Indirectly it is supposed that we have more of
made Caesar in 333 he reigned as Augustus
;
the matter of these earlier writers in Zosimus's
337-350. when he was killed by the conspiracy icTTopia vio., bk. ii. This historian lived
of Magnentius. [Constantius II.] De Broglie probably c, 450. He was a bitter enemy of
(iii. pp. 58, 59) inhischaracterof him remarks: Constantine, whom he accuses of various
" As far as we can discriminate between the crimes and cruelties, and blames for the novel-
contradictory estimates of different historians, ties of his policy, shewing a particular dislike
Constans was of a simple, somewhat coarse, of his conversion. He falls into several his-
nature, and one without high aims though torical blunders. The part of Ammianus's
without malice. As regards the inheritance of Histories relating to this reign is unfortunately
his father's qualities, while Constantius seemed lost. Some remarks on it occur in the part
to have taken for his share his political know- preserved, from which we gather his general
ledge, his military skill, and his eloquence agreement with his friend and contemporary
(thoughreproducingaveryfaint imageof them), Victor. The text of Ammianus, pub. by
Constans had only received great personal cour- Gardthausen (Teubner, 1874), may be recom-
age and a straightforwardness that did him mended. He has also given a revised text
honour. He was, besides, a lover of pleasure : from the MSS. of the anonymous excerpts
he was suspected of the gravest moral irregu- generally cited as Anonymous Valesii, Excerpta
larities. . Hehad firm, though certainly un-
. . Valesiana. They received this name from
enlightened, faith, and frequently gave proofs of being first printed by H. Valois, at the end of
it by distributing largesses to the churches and his ed. of Ammianus. Some of these extracts
favours to the Christians" (cf. Eutrop. Brev. x. may be traced word for word in Eutropius and
9, Vict. Cues. 41, Epit. 41). Zosimus (ii. 42) Orosius hence their author did not live ear-
;

gives him a worse character than do the others. lier than the 5th cent. Others are valuable as
Libanius in 348 delivered a panegyric on Con- coming from sources elsewhere unrepresented.
stans and Constantius, called jSaaiXiKbs \6yos, (Christian.) The earliest contemporary
vol. iii. ed. Reiske, pp. 272-332. St. Chrysostom authority is Lactantius, de Mortibus Persecut-
in the difficult and probably corrupt passage of orum, a tract pub. after the defeat of Max-
his 15th Homily on the Philippians, p. 363, ed. entius and before Constantine had declared
Gaume, speaks of him as having children and himself the enemy of Licinius i.e. probably
as committing suicide, statements elsewhere 313 or 314. His bitterness is unpleasant, and
unsupported. The most favourable evidence his language exaggerated and somewhat ob-
for Constans is the praise of St. Athanasius scure, but his facts are generally confirmed by
(Apol. ad Constantium, 4 sqq. cf. the letter
;
other authors, where we can test them. The
of Hosiusin Hist. Arian. ad Monachos, 44). His most important is Eusebius. Three of his
conduct with respect to the Arian and Donat- works especially treat of Constantine, Hist.
ist controversies gained him the esteem of Eccl. ix. and x., down to 324, and probably
Catholics. He was a baptized Christian his ; pub. before the death of Crispus in 326 ;
de
baptism is referred to in Ap. ad C. [j.w.] Vita Constantini, in four books, with a trans-
Constantinus I. —
A. Ancient Authorities
I.
7.
lation of Constantine's Oratio ad Sanctorum
(Heathen). —
Eutropius, Breviarium, Hist.Rom., Coetum as an appendix, pub. after his death
or Laudes
;

end of 9th and beginning of loth book. This and, thirdly, TpLaKovTatnjpLKSs,
historian was secretary to the emperor, and Constantini, a panegyric at his tricennalia,
his short account is therefore valuable. The containing little but rhetoric. To harmonize
Caesares and the Epitome, current under the Eusebius and Zosimus is difficult. Fleury's
name of Aurelius Victor, were doubtless the dictum, "On ne se trompera sur Constant in
work of different authors. The first, who wrote en croyant tout le mal qu'en dit Eusebe, et
under Constantius, was a friend of Ammianus, tout le bien qu'en dit Zosime," may be per-
and praefectus urbi towards the close of the fectly true, but Zosimus says very little good
cent. the second, who excerpted from the first,
; of him and Eusebius very little harm. Euse-
lived a generation later, and continued his bius has great weight as a contemporary and
compilation down to the death of Theodosius as giving documents, which have not for the
the Great. They seem to have used the same most part been seriously challenged but he
;

sources as Zosimus, whom they supplement. is discredited by fulsomeness and bad taste in
The Panegyrists, as contemporary writers, his later works, and by inconsistencies of tone
deserve more attention than has been given between them and his history. He announces,
them, allowance being made for the defects however, that he will only recount those
incident to their style of writing. Those re- actions of the emperor which belong to his
lating to our subject Anon. Panegyr. Maxi- religious life {V. C. i. 11 : /nSva to, jrpbi rbv
miano et Constantino (a.d. 307), Eumenii Con-
6€o4>L\fj (TvvrdvovTa (Biov), and is open to the
stantino in natalihus urb. Trevir. (310), and
criticism of Socrates {H. E. i. i) as rwc iwalvuv
Gratiarum actio Flaviensium nomine (311),
Anon, de Victoria adv. Maxentium (313), and ToO jBacriXewi Kal t^s iravriyvpiKTis v\prjyopLas
Nazarii Paneg. Constantino (321) are all the
product of Gallic rhetoricians. The Scriptores
— tQiv \byii3v fiaWov ws tv iyKU/J-iu) (ppovTi<Ta% fi
wepi ToO aKpi^uis Trepi\apeiv ra yevdfieva. We
Hist. Augustae contain several contemporary must allow for the natural exultation of Chris-
references to Constantine; those in Julian's tians over the emperor who had done so much
204 CONSTANTINUS I. CONSTANTINUS I.

forthem and openly professed himself an in- Fourth Cent, (ist ed. 1833 3rd ed. 1871) ; ;

strument of Providence for the advancement Neale's Eastern Church, Patriarchate of Alex-
of Christianity. Neither in the case of Euse- andria; Bright's History of the Church, a.d.
bius nor of Zosimus must we push our distrust 313-451, 2nd ed. i86g; and Gwatkin's Arian
too far. The best ed. of the historical works Controversy. A simple monograph on Con-
of Eusebius is by F. A. Heinichen, repub. and stantine by E. L. Cutts is pub. by S.P.C. K.
enlarged (Leipz. 1868-1870, 3 vols.).* The II. Life.— Period i. To 312. —
Flavins Val-
laws issued by Constantine (after 312) in the erius Aurelius Constantinus, surnamed Magnus
Theodosian and Justinian Codes are very im- or the Great, was bornFeb. 27, probably in 274,
portant contemporary documents. The first at Naissus(Nissa),inDardaniaorUpperMoesia,
are in a purer state, and may be consulted in where his family had for some time been settled.
the excellent ed. of Hanel (Bonn. 1842-1844), His father, Constantins Chlorus, was still
or in the older standard folios of Godefroi, with young at the time of his son's birth. He was
their valuable historical notes. Both codes of a good family, being nephew by the mother's
are arranged chronologically in Migne's Pat- side of the emperor Claudius. A few years
rologia, Opera Constantini, which also contains later we find him high in favour with Cams,
the Panegyrists and documents relating to the who intended, it was said, to make him Caesar.
early history of the Donatists. Constantine's mother Helena, on the other
Socrates, H. E. i., and Sozomen, H. E. i. and hand, was of mean position, and apparently
ii. (about a cent, later), give an account of the was married after her son's birth. Constantine
last period of his reign ; Socrates being gener- was brought up at Drepanum in Cicilia, his
ally the safer guide. On his relations with mother's birthplace (Procop. deAedif. Justin.
Arianism much is found in the treatises and V. 2). His father, on becoming Caesar and
epp. of St. Athanasius, and occasional facts taking another wife, sent him, when about 16
may be gleaned from other Fathers. As a hero years old, as a sort of hostage to Diocletian at
of Byzantine history and la-anda-ToXos, Con- Nicomedia, who treated him with kindness.
stantine has become clothed in a mist of iiction. His first military service was to accompany
Something may be gathered from Joannes that emperor against Achillaeus in 296, and
Lydus, de Magistrat. P. R., and among the Eusebius saw him as a young and handsome
fables of Cedrenus and Zonaras may be found man passing through Palestine into Egypt
some facts from more trustworthy sources. (V. C. i. 19). In 297 he took part in the suc-
B. Modern Authorities. —It will be unneces-
sary to enumerate the well-known writers of
cessful war of Galerius against the Persians
and about this time married Minervina.
;

church history and the multitude of minor Constantine continued in the East while his
essays on separate points of Constantine's life. father was fighting in Gaul and Britain. In
As early as 1720 Vogt {Hist. Lit. Const. Mag. 303 he was present when the edict of persecu-
Hamburg) gave a list of more than 150 tion against the Christians was promulgated
authors, ancient and modern, and the number at Nicomedia and the palace soon after struck
has since infinitely increased. The first critical by lightning. The concurrence of these two
life of importance is by
J. C. F. Manso (Leben
events made a strong impression upon him
Constantins des Grossen, Wien, 1819, etc.), but (Orat. ad Sanct. Coet. 25). He also witnessed
it is hard and one-sided, unchristian, if not in 305 the abdication of the two Augusti, Dio-
antichrist ian. Jacob Burckhardt largely fol- cletian and Maximian.
lows Manso, but is much more interesting and A
higher destiny awaited him in another
popular (Die Zeit Constantins des Gr. Basel, part of the empire. His father insisted upon
1853), though not always fair. Some mis- his return, and Galerius at length was per-
statements in it are noticed below. He views suaded to give permission and the seal neces-
the emperor merely as a great politician, and sary for the public posts, ordering him not to
shews much bitterness against Eusebius. start before receiving his last instructions on
Theodore Keim's Der Uebertritt Const, des Gr. the morrow. Constantine took flight in the
(Zurich, 1862) is in many points a good refuta- night. He had probably good reasons for his
tion of Burckhardt, as well as being a fair mistrust, and to stop pursuit maimed the
statement from one not disposed to be credu- public horses at many stations on his road
lous. The first two volumes of L'Eglise et (Zos. ii. 8 Anon. Val. 4 Victor, Caes. 21),
; ;

V Empire au IV' Siecle, by A. de Broglie (Paris, which lay partly through countries where
1855, etc.), give the views of a learned Roman the persecution was raging. He arrived at
Catholic, generally based on original author- Gesoriacum (Boulogne) just in time to accom-
ities, and this is perhaps the most useful book pany his father to Britain on his last expedi-
upon the subject. The section (134) in Dr. P. tion against the Picts (Eumen. in Nat. Urb.
Schaff's Gesch. der Alten Kirche (Leipz. 1867, Trev. vii.). Constantins died at York, July
also trans.) is as good a short account of Con- 306, in the presence of his sons, after declaring
stantine as can be named. In English we Constantine his successor {de AL P. xxiv.).
have a short life by a Nonconformist, Mr. He was almost immediately proclaimed
Joseph Fletcher (Lond. 1852, i6mo), but no Augustus by the soldiers (2e/3a£rr6s irpos tQv
standard work of importance. The brilliant (jTpaTOTreSwv duayopevOeis, Ens. H. E. viii. 13).
sketch by Dean Stanley in his Eastern Church Almost at the same time another claimant of
is probably the fairest picture of Constantine imperial power appeared at Rome in Maxen-
in our language. For his relations with Arian- tius, son of the retired Maximian, who now
ism we may refer to Newman's Arians of the came forward again to assist his son. Con-
* For a careful judgment of Eusebius's Life of stantine's first act was to shew favour to the
Constantine. Heinichen's 23rd Mcletema may be con- Christians {de M. P. xxiv.), who had been
sulted (vol. iii. p. 754). Cf. also dc Broglie, L'Eglise exposed to little of the violence of persecution
tt I Empire, vol. iii. p. 39. under the mild rule of Constantins. (V. C. i.
CONSTANTINDS I. CONSTANTINUS I. 205

13-17. Eusebius seems here to exaggerate. ance till within a few miles of Rome, though
Cf. Episcopor. partis Majorini preces ad Con- this is not quite consistent with the statement
stantinum, in Op. Const. Migne, col. 747-) of Lactantius {de M. P. xliv.). He had
Constantine had at once to defend Gaul against turned the advanced guard of the enemy at
the Franks and German tribes, who had risen Saxa Rubra, close to the Cremera, and then
during the absence of Constantius in Britain pressed forward along the Flaminian road to
(Eumen. ib. x.). In 307 Maximian, who had the walls of the city itself. With great rash-
quarrelled with his son, crossed the Alps and ness Maxentius had determined to give battle
allied himself with the Caesar of the West. exactly in front of the Tiber, with the Milvian
Constantine received as wife his daughter bridge behind him, about a mile from the
Fausta, and with her the title of Augustus gates of Rome. It was Oct. 26, and during the
(Pan. Max. et Const, v.). For three years after night, according to our earliest authority,
marriage he found sufficient employment in Constantine was warned in a dream to draw
consolidating his government in the West, and
the monogram of Christ, the y/, upon the
in wars upon the frontier of the Rhine, over
which he began to build a bridge at Cologne. shields of his soldiers, and now, if not before,
The seat of his court was Treves, which he learnt to invoke the name of Christ to help his
embellished with many buildings, including arms (//. E. ix. 9, 12). For the different
several temples and basilicas, and the forum. accounts of the vision see below, § V. Max-
Meanwhile Galerius was seized with a painful entius, meanwhile, spent the night in sacri-
illness, and on April 30, 311, shorth' before his fices and divination (Zos. ii. 16, etc.). Next
death, issued his haughty edict of toleration, morning the two armies met. That of Max-
the first of the series, to which the names of entius was totally routed, although the prae-
Constantine and Licinius were also affixed. torians vigorously resisted. The fugitives
Constantine remained in the West engaged in crowded upon the bridge, and upon the
wars with the Alemanni and Cherusci, and in pontoons at its side which Maxentius had
restoring the cities of Gaul (cf. Eumen. Grati- devised, according to an almost incredible
arum actio Flaviensium Nomine, on the restor- statement, so as to give way beneath his
ation of the schools of Autun). He is said to opponent (Eus. H. E. ix. 9 5, 6 V. C. i. 38
; ;
;

have interfered by letter on behalf of the Zos. ii. 15). He was himself precipitated into
Eastern Christians whom Maximinus Daza the river, where his body was found the next
now began to molest, and this is in itself prob- day. The victor entered Rome in triumph,
able (de M. P. xxxvii.). We must remem- and was received with great joy {Pan. de Vict.
ber that there were now four Augusti, Licinius adv. M. xix.). He used his victory on the
and Maximinus in the East ; Maxentius and whole with moderation. Eusebius tells us
Constantine in the West. The two latter had that he set up a statue of himself with a spear
for some time acknowledged one another (see terminating in a cross in his right hand, and
below, § VI. Coins), and probably by tacit an inscription to the effect that by this salut-
consent the four restricted themselves pretty ary sign {or standard) he had restored the
nearly to the limits which afterwards bounded Roman senate and people to their ancient
the four great prefectures. But there was glory and freedom (H. E. ix. 9 cf. V. C. i. 40).
;

little united action between them, and sole He now enlarged and endowed many churches
empire was perhaps the secret aim of each. in and near Rome {V. C. i. 42), and wrote
Maxentius now felt himself strong enough to the letters to Anulinus in behalf of the Catholic
break with Constantine, and declared war church in Africa which led to such important
against him. The latter determined to take consequences (ap. Eus. H. E. x. 5, 7). From
the initative, and crossed the Cottian Alps, by these documents it is evident that Constantine
the pass of Mont Genevre, with a force much had already a strong disposition to favour the
smaller than that of his opponent. Later Christians, especially the Catholic body. The
historians affirm that the Romans besought answers to one of them brought the case of
him by an embassy to free them from the Caecilian and the Donatists to his notice, and
tyrant (Zon. Ann. xiii. Cedrenus, § 270), and involved him in the affairs of the African
;

this is probable, for Maxentius, by folly, church. He accepted the title and insignia of
insolence, and brutality had greatly alienated Pontifex Maximus, and both were borne by
his subjects. Constantine had allied himself his successors till Gratian (Zos. iv. 36).
with one of the Eastern Augusti, Licinius, Period ii. 312-324. Commencement of the
whom he engaged in marriage with his sister cycle oi Indictions, Sept. i, 312. Constantine
Constantia, but had to proceed against the sole emperor of the West. — Constantine at
counsels and wishes of his generals and the the age of about 3C was now sole Augustus
advice of the augurs {Pan. de Vict. adv. Maxent. of the West. Having settled the affairs of
ii.). After taking Turin, he rested some days Rome, he proceeded early in 313 to meet
at Milan, where he was received in triumph, Licinius at Milan. There the marriage of the
and gave audience to all who desired it {ib. latter with Constantia was consummated, and
vii.). We may assume that at the same place the full edict of toleration, the Edict of Milan,
and time, the spring or summer of 312, oc- was promulgated. The emperors then sep-
curred also the betrothal of Constantia with arated, Licinius to defend himself against
Licinius, and the issue of a second edict of Maximinus Daza, Constantine to guard the
toleration to the Christians, that somewhat Rhine. Both were victorious. Licinius soon
hard edict to which the emperors refer in the after became sole master of the East by the
more celebrated announcement of 313 (see death of Maximus at Tarsus (Zos. ii. 17 de ;

below § III. B. Religious Policy, and cf. Keim, M. P. xlix.). The latter had followed the
Veberiritt, note 11). After taking Verona, edict of Milan, at the behest of the other
Constantine apparently met with little resist- emperors, by an act of toleration of bis own,

206 CONSTANTINUS I. CONSTANTINUS I.

but of a less full and generous nature. This leapt up as inspired to victory [ib. 12).
if The
did not prevent him from taking advantage of sentiment of a divine vocation was probably
the absence of Licinius to invade his territory, a real one to him, and was fostered by the
who had in consequence to fight Maximinus approbation of the Christians. Licinius, on
at Adrianople with a force half as large as that the very scene of his conflict as a Christian
opposed to him. The battle was in many champion with Maximinus, prepared for
details like that against Maxentius — Licinius battle by sacrifice and worship of the gods,
was favoured with a mysterious dream, and against whom he had then fought, and Con-
solemnly put his army under the protection stantine prepared by prayer and by giving
of the God of the Christians, and on the the watchword Qebs ffur-qp (V. C. ii. 5 and 6 ;

morning of the battle repeated aloud three cf. Soz. H. E. i. 7 on the perversion of Licinius).
times with his officers a prayer to the holy and The battle of Adrianople, July 3, 323, was a
supreme God {de M. P. xlvi.). After his second victory for the Christian arms. Con-
victory he entered Nicomedia in triumph, pro- stantine pursued his opponent to Byzantium.
claimed the edict of Milan, June 13, and then Meanwhile Crispus, who had already won his
pursued Maximinus into Cilicia, where he youthful laurels against the Franks, shewed
found that last of the persecutors dying a himself most active in command of the fleet,
horrible and painful death (de M. P. xlix. Eus.
; and defeated the admiral Amandus in the
H. E. ix. 10, 14). The brothers-in-law were Hellespont. This caused Licinius to quit
thus raised to an equality of power, and were Byzantium for Chalcedon, where he appointed
not likely to remain long at peace. The oc- one of his chief officers, Martinianus, as Caesar.
casion of their quarrel is obscure. Constan- Constantine pursued him, and on Sept. 10,
tine accused Licinius of fomenting a conspiracy after some negotiations, achieved a final vic-
against him. Licinius was defeated and tory at Chrysopolis. Licinius, on the entreaty
made peace by the cession of Illyricum i.e. of Constantia, was permitted to retire to
of the whole peninsula of which Greece is the Thessalonica but was not allowed to live
;

extremity. Constantine was not too busy above a year longer. Socrates relates that
during this campaign to attend to the arrange- after remaining quiet a short time, " he col-
ment of the council of Aries, and to interest lected some barbarians, and attempted to
himself vehemently in the Donatist disputes. repair his defeat " {H. E. i. 4 so Zonaras and
;

Peace followed for nine years, during which Niceph. Call.), and Eusebius justifies his exe-
the emperor employed himself with barbarian cution by the law of war {V. C. ii. 19). Zosi-
wars, and with legislation civil and religious, mus and the heathen historians make it an
as detailed below. His Decennalia were cele- instance of the emperor's faithlessness (Zos.
brated at Rome 315, 3x6, and the triumphal ii. 28 Victor, Epit. I.e.
; Eutrop. Brev. x. 6),
;

arch dedicated. Two years later his son as does also the chronicle of Jerome (ann. 2339,
Crispus, now a young man, and his infant son " Licinius Thessalonicae contra jus sacramenti
and nephew Constantine and Licinianus, were privatus occiditur"). Yet apparently Con-
raised to the rank of Caesar at Aries (Zos. ii. stantia did not resent the execution of her
20, etc.^. His other sons by Fausta were husband, nor Fausta the death of her father.
born also in this period, Constantius in Constantine was thus master of the whole
317 and Constans in 323. Licinius mean- empire, and his first act was to issue edicts of
while began to oppress his subjects, especially toleration and favour to the Christians of the
the Christians. He forbade the synods of East (F. C. ii. 24 seq., cited as Provincialibus
bishops, interfered with their worship, and in Palestinae and 48 seq. Prov. Orientis). He
many cases destroyed their churches (even now specially assumed the title of Victor
Julian, Caes. p. 315, is unfavourable to (viKTiT-qs){V. C. ii. 19). He had won it by his
Licinius). Constantine was engaged in de- constant successes against barbarians on the
fending his Danubian frontier from Goths and Rhine and Danube and rival emperors from
Sarmatians, and took the Sarmatian king the Tiber to the Bosphorus his twenty years :

Rausimodes prisoner (Zos. ii. 21). In some of of empire had brought him from London in the
these expeditions he had trespassed across far West to Byzantium, the centre of the
the boundaries of Licinius, and this was the Eastern world, and had been years of unin-
pretext for a quarrel, which was increased by terrupted conquest. He was not unthankful
the expostulations of Constantine against the to the Providence which had guided him, nor
treatment of the Christians, and after some indisposed to acknowledge that something was
changes of temper on the part of Licinius, an due from him in return (Prov. Pal. V. C. ii.
open rupture took place. 28, 29). But his progress had not led him to
The character of the former war was am- a victory over himself, or rather his success
biguous. This one was in great measure a made him forget his own liability to crime.
religious war or crusade (Eus. H. E. x. 9). Period iii. 324-337. Constantine sole em-

Before any conflict was fought (it was peror. The history of the last twelve years
said) the subjects of Licinius thought they of Constantine's reign is of a very different
saw the victorious legions of Constantine character from that of preceding periods. As
marching through their streets at midday sole emperor he loses rather than gains in our
(V. C. ii. 6). The monogram of Christ was now estimation. He had no longer a religious
stamped on almost all his coinage {infra, § VL). cause to fight for nor a dangerous rival to over-
The labarum became a talisman of victory throw. The hardness of his character fitted him
(olovei Ti VLKTfTiKhv d\e^i(pd.pfj.aK0u, V. C. for a life of strong excitement, but not for the
ii.7). The emperor surrounded himself with intrigues of an Eastern court and the subtle
Christian priests, and believed himself fav- questions of Eastern theology. His immoder-
oured with visions as he prayed in the tent ate profusion in building and other expensive
containing the standard of the cross, and operations gained him the name of " spend-

CONSTANTINUS I. CONSTANTINUS I. 207

and his liberality towards the church its climax. There was much in the city itself
thrift," I

was by no means free from the evils that at- to irritate and disturb him. The ancient
tend prodigal benevolence. But he had no aristocracy, in the absence of a resident
less a providential part to play in the internal emperor, preserved many of its old heathen
history of that church than he had had up to traditions. Though he came determined to
this time in the destruction of her persecutors. be tolerant (Cod. Th. xv. i, 3) and desirous of
As emperor of the West he had been led to gaining the favour of the senate {id. xv. 14 ;
interfere in her councils by the African schism, 3, 4), it soon became evident that he was out
on which his decision was desired by both of harmony with Rome. He would not join
parties. As monarch also of the East he was in the solemn review of the knights held on
brought directly into contact with specula- July 15, and in their procession and sacrifice
tions on points of Christian doctrine which to Jupiter Capitolinus but viewed it con-
;

had their origin and home there. He again temptuously from the Palatine and ridiculed
attempted to realize his idea of unity. Taking it to those around him (Zos. ii. 29). Such an
as precedent the great council of Western action, joined with his Oriental dress and
bishops he had summoned at Aries (Aug. 314) general bearing, seems to have aroused
in the case of Caecilian, he determined to call popular indignation against him. Though
together representatives of the whole empire tempted to revenge himself by force, he was
to decide on the doctrines of Arius and the wise enough to refrain. (See esp. de Broglie,
Paschal controversy (see below, § III. 2). To I.e. ii. c. 5, for the events of this year. He
Constantine is due in great measure the hold- puts together Liban. Or. 12, p. 393 Or. 15, ;

ing of the council of Nicaea (June and July, p. 412, and Chrys. Or. ad Pop. Antioch. 21.)
325). But the success of that great meeting But this outburst was followed by far heavier
unfortunately filled him with overweening tragedies within his own household. In
pride. The conclusion of their session fell at relating them we have to rely on the vague
the beginning of the 20th year of his reign, and and inconsistent tales of later writers, those
he celebrated the condemnation of Arius as a nearest the emperor, Eutropius and Eusebius,
second triumph {V. C. iii. 14). He enter- being markedly silent. They seem to have
tained all the bishops at his table. " The originated with divisions, such as easily arose
guards," says Eusebius, " kept watch with in a family composed of so many different
drawn swords round the vestibule of the elements. The half-brothers of Constantine,
palace ;the men of God passed through their the sons of Constantius and Theodora, natur-
midst without fear, and entered the inmost ally took part with their mother's half-sister,
parts of the royal dwelling. Some of them Fausta, and her sons. On the other hand,
reclined by his side, and others were placed Helena had reason to sympathize with her
on couches on either hand. One might have grandson Crispus, the son of Minervina. Prob-
seemed to picture to oneself an image of ably it was in connexion with these divisions
Christ's kingdom the whole thing was more that Crispus was suddenly arrested and con-
;

like a dream than a reality " (ib. 15). The same veyed to an unknown death at Pola in Istria
writer suggests that the church of the Anas- (Amm. Marc. xiv. 11). Niebuhr thought it
tasis, built by Constantine, fulfilled the pro- probable that the accusation of treason against
phecies about the New Jerusalem {V. C. iii. his father, reported by Gregory of Tours (Htst.
33). Constantine's interest in the success of Franc, i. 36), had some foundation of truth.
the council did not end with its dispersion. Another, but not an early account, represents
He wrote to those concerned in its decrees, Fausta as playing to Crispus the part of Phae-
strongly enforcing conformity with them. Th? dra towards Hippolytus (Zos. ii. 29), and other
same feelings led him to compose and deliver authors name her as his accuser without
theological declamations, and to attempt the specifying the nature of the charge (Vict.
conversion of his courtiers. Large crowds Epit. 41, Philostorgius, ii. 4. Sozomen, H. E.
attended to listen to the philosophizing prince, i. 5, implies that the death of Crispus was
who did not spare their faults. But the required of Constantine by others). The
matter was not one merely of philosophy. It young and promising Caesar Licinianus was
may be, as Burckhardt suggests (p. 454), that at the same time unjustifiably put to death
he took such opportunities of seriously warning (Eutrop. X. 6; Hieron. Chron. Ann. 2342).
or even denouncing those of his " companions " The following satirical distich, attributed to
and "palatines" whose presumption on his the city prefect Ablavius, was found on the
favour had become intolerable. The passion- palace doors after the death of Crispus (Sidon.
ate and almost eloquent law of this year, pro- ApoUin. Ep. V. 8) :

mulgated Nicomedia, calls upon any one


at
" Saturni aurea saecla quis requirat ?
who feels wronged by such officials to declare Siint haec gemmea, sed Neroniana."
their grievances freely, and promises personal
vengeance on those " who up to this time have But he was avenged much more tragically, and
deceived us by simulated integrity " ; and at no distant date. (Jerome puts it three
when Constantine felt himself wronged he did years later, the others connect the two events.)
not hesitate to strike (Cod. Th. ix. i, 4 in 325). Fausta herself was executed in as sudden and
After a prolonged sojourn in the East his as dark a way as Crispus. The complaints of
presence was now required in Rome. He Helena seemed to have aroused her son to this
advanced thither by slow stages, arriving dire act of retribution (Zos. ii. 29 Vict. Epit.
;

about July 8, in time to celebrate the com- 41). Later writers represent the empress as
pletion of his 2oth year of empire, July 25, guilty of adultery (Philost. ii. 4 Sidon. ;

326. He left it certainly before the end of ApoU. I.e. Greg. Turon. H. F. i. 34), and her
;

Sept. ; but in that short space of time all that punishment is said to have been suffocation in
was tragical in his life seems to have reached the steam of a hot bath.
208 CONSTANTINUS I. CONSTANTINUS I.

There cannot, we think, despite the doubts was much under the influence of Eusebius of
raised by Gibbon, be any real doubt that Nicomedia, and had in her household an Arian
Crispus and Fausta perished, both probably in priest, who persuaded her that Arius had been
328, by the orders of Constantine, acting as the most unjustly treated. She had not courage
instrument of family jealousies. The death to speak on the subject herself to her brother,
of Fausta was followed by the execution of but on her deathbed strongly recommended
many of her friends, presumably those who had this priest to him, and he was taken into the
taken part against Crispus (Eutrop. x. 4). imperial family, soon gaining influence over
Popular traditions represent Constantine as the emperor. The result, it is said, was Con-
tormented by remorse after his delirium of stantine's gradual alienationfrom the Catholics
cruelty had passed, and as seeking everywhere (Socr. i. 25 see de Broglie, c. v., at the end).
;

the means of expiation and nothing can be Meanwhile the building of the new capital went
;

more in harmony with the character of Con- on with great vigour, temples and cities, especi-
stantine and of the age than to suppose this. ally in Greece and Asia Minor, being despoiled
Christian bishops could only urge him to re- to beautify it and to fit it for the residence of
pentance to be followed by baptism. But for a new nobility, some created, and others trans-
reasons which we do not thoroughly know, ferred from Rome. Of the population that
Constantine put off this important step, and gathered into it almost all the pagans and many
also the baptism of his sons. That he be- of the Jews became Christians. The city was
stowed some possessions on the church at this solemnly consecrated on May 11, 330, followed
time, and built or handed over basilicas to it, is by a feast of forty days (Idatius. fasti, Chron.
very probable. Among the many which claim Pasch. A.D. 330), and the anniversary was
foundation at his hand we may name the long kept as the nativity of Constantinople.
Vatican, which was destroyed to make room It is indeed a very important era, marking'"
for the modern St. Peter's St. Agnes, which
; the greatest political transformation that the
has an inscription referring to his daughter Roman empire underwent. With it were con-
Constantina ; and the Lateran, once the nected the great constitutional changes detailed
palace of Fausta and the seat of the first below, § III. I, under which grew up the
council about the Donatists, and still the real Byzantine spirit with its peculiar character,
cathedral of the pope. Probably the pilgrim- turbulent, slavish, and unimaginative, but yet
age of Helena to Palestine in pursuance of a capable of endurance tempered with a certain
vow, and the " Invention of the Cross," is to kind of morality.
be assigned to the time that immediately The years that followed brought Constan-
follows. Constantine gave her every assist- tine more than ever into the debates of the
ance, and authorized her to spend money church. The emperor recalled Arius, but
freely both in alms and buildings (Paulinus Athanasius, now bp. of Alexandria, refused to
of Nola, Ep. II, ad Sulpic. Sever. cf. V. C.
; receive him. In the middle of his 30th year,
iii. 47, 3). Possibly he delayed his own Bap- 335, Constantine distributed the territories
tism in the hope that he might soon follow her under his dominion between his three sons and
example and be washed in the holy waters of two nephews. The eldest, Constantine, received
Jordan {V. C. iv. 62). He now left Rome the provinces of his grandfather, Britain,
never to return, but with the project of found- Spain, and Gaul Constantius, Asia, Syria,
;

ing a new Rome in the East, which should and Egypt Constans, Italy and Africa.
;

equal if not surpass the old. Dalmatius, with the title of Caesar, had the
The beauty and convenience of the site of large province of lUyricum and Hannibal-
;

Byzantium had long beennoticed (cf. Herod, iv. lian, Armenia and Pontus, with the extra-
144) ;it was the birthplace of Fausta, and its ordinary name of kin^. The evidence of coins
immediate neighbourhood had seen the final would lead us to see in this measure a recon-
defeat of Licinius. The emperor had perhaps ciliation of the two branches of the family.
already formed the idea of embellishing it and The end of Constantine's eventful life was now
calling it by his own name. He had probably at hand, and as some of his first military ser-
moved a mint thither as early as 325, and used vices had been against the Persians, so now
the name (Constantinopolis) upon his coins. he was obliged at its close to prepare for war
But now his intention may have been strength- against that people, though he never actually
ened by his distaste for Rome, and by a super-engaged in it (V. C. iv. 57). The labarum had
stition that Rome's from power was at now been for many years the recognized stan-
fall
hand (Chron. Pasch. ed. Bonn, p. 517). Other dard of the empire, wherever the emperor was
cities had attracted his attention his final present
;
and as in the time of the war with
;

choice was Byzantium. Many stories are told Licinius, the monogram of Christ was in these
of the ceremonies with which he laid out the last years largely stamped upon its coins (see
plan of the new Rome, enclosing like its proto- § VI.). Constantine made also other prepar-
type the tops of seven hills. De Broglie places ations for the use of religious service in war,
the foundation in 328 or 329 {l.c.'n. 441). The especially of a tent for his own chapel (V. C.
Christian historians assert that the absence of iv. 56; Socr. i. 18), and he had some time
heathenism from the city was the express desire before taught his soldiers, heathen as well as
of the emperor (e.g. V. C. iii. 48). Christian, a common daily prayer, and ordered
The removal of Sopater perhaps gave room Sunday to be kept as a holy day (V. C. iv. 19
for the power of Helena to reassert itself. She and 20 L. C. ix. 10 cf. Cod. Th. II. 8, i, in
; ;

communicated to her son the success of her 321). At Easter 337 he completed and dedi-
pilgrimage, and forwarded him certain relics, cated his great church of the Holy Apostles,
which he received with great joy. [Helena.] in which he desired to be buried. In the week
The death about the same time of his sister that followed, his health, hitherto extremely
Constautia had important consequences. She good, gave way, and he sought relief in the
CONSTANTINUS I. CONSTANTINUS I. 209

warm baths at Helenopolis. Feeling his Divinity into one consistent form, the second
death approaching, he confessed his sins in the to set in order the body of the world which was
church of the martyrs (of the raartyr Lucian- labouring as it were under a grievous sickness.
us ?), and now first received imposition of Such, no doubt, were the real desires of Con-
hands as a catechumen. Then he moved back stantine, but he was too impulsive, too rude in
to the villa Ancyrona, a suburb of Nicomedia intellect, too credulous of his own strength, to
(Eutrop. X.8 Vict. Caes. 41), and desired
;
carry them out with patience, wisdom, and
Baptism of the bishops whom he there as- justice. We shall arrange the details of this
sembled {V. C. iv. 61). He had wished once, policy under three heads

:

he said, to be baptized in Jordan, but God (i) Acts of Toleration. During the first
had decided otherwise. He felt that now the period of his reign it is probable that Constan-
blessing he had so long hoped for was offered tine as well as Constantius Chlorus prevented
him. " Let there be no doubt about it," he any violent persecution. His first public act
added, " I have determined once for all, if the of toleration, of which we have any certain
Disposer of life and death sees fit to raise me record, was to join together with Licinius in
up again to fellowship with His people, to the edict issued by Galerius in 311 (given in
impose upon myself rules of life such as He de M. P. 34 and more diffusely by Eus. H. E.
would approve " (V. C. iv. 62, see Heinichen's viii. 17). The edict acknowledged that per-
note). Baptism was administered to him by secution had failed, and gave permission to
the Arian prelate Eusebius of Nicomedia Christians to worship their own God and re-
(Hieron. Chron. ann. 2353). From that mo- build their places of meeting, provided they
ment he laid aside the purple robe, and wore did nothing contrary to good order (contra
only the white garment of a neophyte. He disciplinam, misrendered iiriffTri/j.rj in Eus.).
died on Whitsunday 337, in the 31st year of The death of Galerius followed almost directly,
his reign, dating from July 25, 306. and in the spring or summer of 312 Constan-

in. Religious Policy. The great change tine and Licinius promulgated another edict
which makes the reign of Conste.ntine an epoch perhaps not very different from that of Galer-
in church history is the union between church ius. The text of it is lost. It allowed liberty
and state, and the introduction of the per- of worship, but specified certain hard condi-
sonal interference of the emperor. The proxi- tions amongst others that no converts should
;

mate cause of his great influence was the re- be made from heathenism that no sect out- ;

action of feeling which took place, when the side " the body of Christians, the Catholic
civil governor, from being a persecutor or an Church," should be tolerated that confiscat-
;

instrument of persecution, became a promoter ed property should not be restored, except,


of Christianity. Something, no doubt, was perhaps, the sites of churches. This edict,
owing to the teaching of Christian moralists issued before the conflict with Maxentius, con-
as to submission to the powers that be, and trasts strikingly with the much more liberal
to the general tendency towards a system of edict of Milan issued in the spring of 313,
official subordination, of which the political which gave free toleration to every religious
constitution of Constantine is the great ex- body. The purport of this edict may be
ample. His success in establishing that con- summed up thus " : We
have sometime per-
stitution, without any serious opposition, ceived that liberty of worship must not be
seems to shew the temper of men's minds at denied to Christians and to all other men, but
the time, and the absence of individual pro- whereas in our former edict divers conditions
minence or independence of thought amongst were added, which perhaps have been the
either followers or opponents. This was true cause of the defection of many from that
as well of the church as of the state. The observance, we Constantine and Licinius,
great men who have left their mark on church Augusti, meeting in Milan, decree that both
organization and policy had either passed Christians and all other men soever should
away, like St. Cyprian, or had not yet attained have free liberty to choose that form of wor-
their full powers. The two seeming excep- ship which they consider most suitable to
tions are Hosius bp. of Cordova and St. themselves in order that the Divinity may be
Athanasius. The first had great influence able to give us and our subjects His accus-
over the emperor, but probably lacked genius, tomed goodwill and favour. We
abolish all
and is but obscurely known to us. Athanasius, those conditions entirely. Further for the
though he might have sympathized with some body of the Christians in particular, all places
of the wide conceptions of Constantine, never of meeting which belonged to them, and have
came sufficiently into contact with him to since been bought by or granted to others, are
overcome the prejudices raised against him by to be restored and an indemnity may be
;

the courtiers ; and the emperor could not claimed by the buyers or grantees from our
really comprehend the importance of the treasury and the same we decree concerning
;

points for which Athanasius was contending. the other corporate property of the Christians.
The period, too, of Athanassiu's greatest The execution of the law is committed to the
activity was in the succeeding reign. civil magistrates, and it is everywhere to be
Constantine, therefore, was left very much made public." The change of feeling here
to make his own way, and to be guided by his evinced was more strongly marked in other
own principles or impulses. With regard to documents that followed, which more peculi-
his religious policy we have an expression of arly expressed the mind of Constantine. The
his own, in his letter to Alexander and Arius, first in order is a letter to Anulinus, proconsul
which may help us in our judgment of its of Africa, giving directions for the execution
merits (Eus. V. C. ii. 65). Two principles, he of the edict, in which the term " Catholic
said, had guided his actions ;the first to unify Church " is substituted for that of "body of
the belief of all nations with regard to the Christians " (Eus. H. E. x. 5, 15)- Then follows

14
;

210 CONSTANTINUS I. CONSTANTINUS I.

another addressed to the same official liber- ordinary letter of violent invective. The de-
ating the clergy " in the Catholic church of tailed history of this time is involved in diffi-
which Caecilian is president " from the pres- culty, but the expedient of a general council
sure of public burdens. This concession, at was a natural one both to the emperor and to
first apparently made to Africa alone, was the church at large. The Meletian schism in
extended to the whole church in 319 (C. Th. Egypt and the Paschal controversy required
xvi. 2, 2). The description of Christianity in settlement, and in Constantine's mind the
the privilege granted to the African church is latter was equally important with Arianism.
remarkable " as the religion in which the The idea and its execution are ascribed to Con-
crowning reverence is observed towards the stantine without any mention of suggestions
holiest powers of heaven " (H. E. x. 7). The from others, except perhaps from Hosius
mention of Caecilian and this definition of the (Sulpic. Sever. Chron.u.40, "S.NicaenaSynod-
Catholic church in the same document was us auctore illo confecta habebatur " ) He sent .

not allowed to pass unchallenged by the complimentary letters in every direction, and
Donatists. They presented to Anulinus an gave the use of public carriages and litters to
appeal, Libellus Ecclesiae Catholicae criminum the bishops. The year of the council is al-
Caeciliani, and a request for a commission of lowed to be 325, but the day is much debated.
inquiry, both of which he forwarded to the Hefele discusses the various dates, and places
emperor (Aug. Ep. 88 (68), 2 Migne, Const.
; the solemn opening on June 14 (Councils, § 26).
Mag. col. 479). The bishops were arranged round a great hall
(2) The Donatist Schism. — The appeal of in the middle of the palace, when Constantine
the Donatists brought Constantine directly entered to open the proceedings, dressed mag-
into the heart of church controversies, and nificently, and making a great impressionhy
was the first occasion of his gradually growing his stately presence, lofty stature, and gentle
interference. Though his relations with this and even modest demeanour. This is not the
schism form only an episode in its history, place to trace the course of the discussions that
their consequences were important. [Dona- followed. [Arius.] Two points are deserving
tists.] The results were such a mixture of of note — first, the story of his burning the
good and evil as seems inseparable from the memorials and recriminations of the different
union of church and state. The church profited parties addressed to him secondly, his relation
;

by the development of her system of councils, to the ofj.oovcrioi'. As to the first, it is said that
and a general growth in organization and polity Constantine brought them into the synod in a
the emperor gained a nearer insight into the sealed packet and threw them into the fire, say-
feeling of the church and the state obtained a
; ing to the bishops :
" You cannot be judged by
most important support. On the other hand a man like myself such things as these must
:

must be set the identification of the Catholic wait till the great day of God's judgment, " add-
with the dominant and worldly church, and the ing, according to Socrates, " Christ has advised
precedent allowed of imperial interference in us to pardon our brother if we wish to obtain
questions of schism. From the banishment pardon ourselves " (Socr. i. 8, p. 63 Migne Soz. ;

of the Donatists for schism it was no great step i. 17). His relation to the o/xoovo-lov rests on the
to the persecutions of Arians and Catholics for Ep. of Eusebius to his own church, in which he
heresy, and not much further to the execution gives an account of the svnod to his own ad-
of the Priscillianists by Magnus Maximus. vantage (Socr. i. 8 Theod.'i. 12; Athan. Decret.
(3) The Arian Controversy. —
The relation
of the emperor to this great controversy was
;

Synod. Nic. 4). He gives the text of the creed


which he proposed to the council and tells us;

the result of his last achievement of power. that after it was read no one got up to speak
His complete victory over Licinius in 323 against it, but, on the contrary, the emperor
brought him into contact with the controver- praised it very highly and exhorted everyone to
sies of his new dominions in the East, just as
embrace it with the addition only of one word
his victory over Maxentius had led to the Don- — " consubstantial." He then proceeded to
atist appeals in the West. The first document comment on it, declaring that the word implied
which connects him with this controversy is a neither a corporeal substance nor a division of
letter to Alexander and Arius (Eus. V. C. ii. the divine substance between the Father and
64-72 ; Socr.
i. 7 gives only the latter half of
the Son, but was to be understood in a divine
it). Heexpresses his longing for " calm days and mysterious sense. Though it is pretty
and careless nights," and exhorts the oppo- clear that the word o^uooiVios was in the minds
nents to reconcihation. The whole had arisen
of the orthodox party throughout, they may
from an unpractical question stirred by Alex- have hesitated to propose it at first, as its
ander, and from an inconsiderate opinion
association with Paul of Samosata was pro-
expressed by Arius. Again and again he
vocative of much disputation. Hosius, it
insists on the insignificance of the dispute
may be, suggested to the emperor that the
{virip fiiKpLcv Kal \lav ^XaxlffTwy <Pl\ov(lkovv-
proposition should come from his lips. He
TdlV - Vtr^p tQiV iXaxicTTWV TOVTWV t^TJTTjffeWl' must have had some tuition in theological
dKpiPoXoye1crd€, etc.), shewing in a remarkable language from an orthodox theologian before
manner his own ignorance and self-confidence. he could give the interpretation with which
This letter was sent by Hosius, but naturally Eusebius credits him. When the creed was
had no effect though we are ignorant of his
: finally drawn up, the emperor accepted it as
proceedings at Alexandria, except that he inspired, and with his usual vehemence in the
combated Sabellianism ^Socr. iii. 8, p. 394 cause of peace proceeded to inflict penalties
Migne; Hefele, § 22). Arius seems to have upon the few who still refused to sign it. He
now written a letter of remonstrance, to which wished even to abolish the name of Arians
Constantine, who was under other influences and to change it into Porphyrians [Ep. ad
or in a different mood, replied in an extra- Ecclesias, Migne, p. 506 Socr. i. 9).
; Later
;

CONSTANTINUS I. CONSTANTINUS I. 211

Eusebius of Nicomedia and Theognis of Nicaea ita proelium committeret. Fecit ut jussus est
were deposed and banished, as they had not et tranversa X littera, sumrao capite circum-
recognized the deposition of Arius, though flexo, Christum in scutis notat." This took
they had been brought to sign the creed. Con- place on the night before the battle of the
stantine indulged particularly in invectives Milvian bridge. Eusebius's narrative {V. C.
against Eusebius of Nicomedia, accusing him i. 27-32) contrasts very strikingly with this.
of having stirred uppersecution imder Licinius, He represents Constantine as looking about
and of deceiving himself at Nicaea (Ep. ad for some god to whom he should appeal for
Nicomedienses c. Etis. et Theognn{in,Migne,-pp. assistance in his campaign against Maxentius,
519 f., from Gelasius, iii. 2, and the collections and as thinking of the god of his father Con-
of councils). Constantine expressed an irn- stantius. He besought him in prayer to re-
moderate joy at the success of the council, veal himself, and received a sign, which the
considering it a personal triumph. Eusebius historian could not distrust on the word and
has preserved the letter the emperor then wrote oath of the emperor given to himself many
to all the churches [V. C. iii. 17-20). years later. About the middle of the after-
Constantine in his relations to Arianism noon (for so the words seem to be best inter-
was obviously the instrument for good as well preted), he saw with his own eyes the trophy
as for evil. On the one hand, he acted with of the cross figured in light standing above the
good intentions, and was able by the superior- sun, and with the letters tovt^j viKa attached
ity of his position to take a wide view of the to it. He and his army were seized with
needs of the church ;on the other he was amazement, and he himself was in doubt as
very ignorant, self-confident, credulous, and to the meaning of the appearance. As he was
violent. We know too little of the influences long considering it night came on, and in sleep
by which he was swayed how, for instance,
:
Christ appeared to him with the sign that ap-
Hosius acquired and lost his ascendancy peared in heaven, and ordered him to make a
what Eusebius of Caesarea really did how ;
standard of the same pattern. The next day
Eusebius of Nicomedia obtained influence he gave directions to artificers how to prepare
with the emperor in the last period of his life. the labarum, which was adorned with gold
We only know that the emperor, in his anxiety and precious stones. Eusebius describes it
above all things for peace, was led to do violent as he afterwards himself saw it. It consisted
acts of an inconsistent character that made of a tall spear with a bar crossing it, on the
peace impossible ;but we must remember p
that he was living in an age of violent men.
relations with
highest point of which was a ^K encircled
For details of Constantine's
heathenism see especially A. Beugnot, Hist, de
: with a crown, while a square banner gorgeously
la destruction du Paganisme en Occident, 2 vols. embroidered hung from the cross bar, on the
(Paris, 1835), an important and thoughtful upper part of which were the busts of the
book, unfortunately scarce and E. Chastel, emperor and his sons. Constantine immediate
;

Hist, de la destruction du Paganisme dans ly made inquiries of the priests as to the figure
I' Empire d'Orient (Paris, 1850) —
both crowned seen in his vision, and determined with good
by the Academy. Less important is Der Unter- hope to proceed under that protection.
gang des Hellenismus und die Etitziehung seiner Eusebius nowhere states exactly where or
Tempelgiiter durch die Christlichen Kaiser, by when this took place his vague expressions
;

Ernst von Lasaulx (Miinchen, 1854). seem to place it near the beginning of the
IV. Character. —Constantine deserves the campaign. The senate acknowledged an
divinitatis and the contemporary
name of Great, whether we consider the poli- instinctus
tical or the religious change that he effected, panegyrist refers to dtvina praecepta in the
but he belongs to the second, rather than the campaign with Maxentius.
first, order of great men. Notwithstanding Another sort of divine encouragement is
his wide successes, and his tenacious grasp recorded later by the heathen panegyrist
over the empire in which he worked such Nazarius in 321, c. 14. " All Gaul," he says,
revolutions, notwithstanding his high sense of " speaks of the heavenly armies who pro-
his own vocation and the grandeur of some of claimed that they were sent to succour the
his conceptions, his personal character does emperor against Maxentius." " Flagrabant
not inspire us with admiration. With many verendum nescio quid umbone corusci et
of the impulses of greatness it remained to the caelestium armorum lux terribilis ardebat . . .

last unformed and uncertain, and never lost Haec ipsorum sermocinatio, hoc inter audi-
a tinge of barbarism. He was wanting in the entes ferebant '
Constantinum petimus, Con-
best heathen and Christian virtues he had ; stantino inius auxilio.' " A distinct incident
little of dignity, cultivation, depth, or tender- is added by the late and antagonistic Zosimus,
ness. I f we compared him with any great man but he tells us nothing of what happened to
of modern times it would rather be with Peter Constantine, only of a prodigious number of
of Russia than with Napoleon. owls which flocked to the walls of Rome when
p Maxentius crossed the Tiber (ii. 16).
On the Christian side the only independent
V. Vision of the A\. —The question of the account of later date seems to be that of Sozo-
reality of this vision is perhaps the most un- men, i. 3, who afterwards gives the account of
satisfactory of the many problems in the life Eusebius. " Having determined to make an
of Constantine. The almost contemporary expedition against Maxentius, he was natur-
account of Lactantius has been already men- ally doubtful of the event of the conflict and
tioned ; Life, period i. from de M. P. 44
;
: of the assistance he should have. While he
" Commonitus est in quiete Constantinus ut was in this anxiety he saw in a dream the sign
caeleste signum Dei notaret in scutis atque of the cross flashing in the sky, and as he was
: ;

212 CONST ANTINUS I. CONSTANTIUS I.

amazed at the sight, angels of God stood by a priori this seems a fitting juncture for a
him and said, '
O
Constantino, in this con- miracle to have been worked. "It was first
quer !
'
too that Christ appeared
It is said a fitting rite of inauguration when Christianity
to him and shewed him the symbol of the was about to take its place among the powers
cross, and ordered him to make one like it, to whom God has given rule over the earth ;

and to use it in his wars as a mainstay and next it was an encouragement and direction
pledge of victory. Eusebius Pamphili, how- to Constantine himself and to the Christians
ever," etc. Rufinus also gives both accounts. who marched with him ; but it neither seems
Later writers repeat one or other of these nar- to have been intended nor to have operated
ratives, adding details of time and place, for as a display of divine power to the confusion
which there is no warrant. of infidelity or error " (§ 155). Newman
That something took place during the cam- seems to be right in arguing that nothing is

paign with Maxentius which fixed Constan- gained in regard to difficulties like this by —
tino's mind upon Christ as his protector and transferring the event from the category of
upon the cross as his standard, no unpreju- miracle to that of special Providence, [j.w.]
diced person can deny. It is equally certain Constantinus II., the eldest son of Constan-
that he believed he had received this intima- tine the Great by Fausta, born a.d. 312, was
tion by divine favour and as a divine call. made Caesar in 316 together with Crispus, and
Those who give him credit for inventing the his quinquennalia were celebrated by the
whole story out of political considerations panegyric of Nazarius in 321. At the death
totally misapprehend his character. But two of his father, the empire being redivided,
questions obviously remain to be discussed Constantine as the eldest son seems to have
(i) Which account is to be preferred, that of claimed Constantinople, but this was over-
Eusebius or Sozomen ? (2) Can we speak of ruled, and he was placed over the West.
the circumstance as a miracle ? Constantine thus came into contact with St.
(i) Eusebius's account, being the most Athanasius in his exile at Treves, and at once
striking and resting on the authority of the took him under his protection. [Athana-
emperor, has been most popularly received. sius.] In 340 Constantine invaded the
It is open to obvious difficulties, arising from dominions of Constans and penetrated into
the silence of contemporaries and the lateness Lombardy, where he was killed in a small
of the testimony. Dr. J. H. Newman, in his engagement. His dominions then went to
Essay on Ecclesiastical Miracles, has said per- Constans, who thus ruled the entire West. Of
haps all that can be said for Eusebius. He his character we know little or nothing. He
thinks it probable that the panegyrist of 313 appears to have been a staunch Catholic, but
refers to this vision as the adverse omen which his attack upon the dominions of his brother
he will pass over and not raise unpleasant re- Constans does not put his character in a
collections by repeating (cap. 2) —
for the cross favourable light. His short reign makes him
would be to Romans generally a sign of dis- very unimportant. [j-w.]
may, and Constantine (says Eusebius) was at Constantius I. Flavius Valerius, surnamed
first much distressed in mind with regard to Chlorus (6 X\u>p6s, " the pale "), Roman
it. The panegyrist also praises Constantine emperor, a.d. 305, 306, father of Constantine
for proceeding " contra haruspicum monita," the Great, son of Eutropius, of a noble Dar-
and asserts " habes profecto aliquod cum ilia danian family, by Claudia, daughter of Crisp-
mente divina, Constantine, secretum, quae, us, brother of the emperors Claudius II. and
delegata nostri diis minoribus cura, uni se tibi Quintilius. Born c. a.d. 250. Distinguished
dignetur ostendere ? " Optatian also, writing by ability, valour, and virtue, Constantius
c. 326, though he does not mention the vision, became governor of Dalmatia under the
speaks of the cross as " caeleste signum." emperor Cams, who was prevented by death
Those modern writers too, who think of a from making him his successor. Diocletian
solar halo or parhelion as an explanation, pre- (emperor, a.d. 284-305), to lighten the cares
J. A. Fabricius of empire, associated Maximian with
fer the account of Eusebius. himself
was perhaps the first to offer this explanation and arranged that each emperor should
(Exercitatio Critica de Cruce Const. Mag. in his appoint a co-regent caesar. Constantius was
Bibliotheca Graeca, vol. vi.), which is followed thus adopted by Maximian, and Galerius by
by Manso, Milman, Stanley, Heinichen, and Diocletian (Mar. i, a.d. 292). Each being
others. * The latter in his 24th Meletema gives obliged to repudiate his wife and marry the
a useful resume of the literature of the subject. daughter of his adopted father, Constantius
Few historians adopt the alternative, which separated from Helena, the daughter of an
Schaff accepts, of a providential dream (§ 134). innkeeper, who was not his legal wife but was
It is difficult in fact to resist the impression mother of Constantine the Great, and married
that there was some objective sign visible in Theodora, stepdaughter of Maximian, by
daylight, such as Eusebius describes, notwith- whom he had six children. As his share of the
standing the omission of it by Lactantius. empire, Constantius received the provinces
(2) Can this sign be considered a miracle? Gaul, Spain, and Britain. In a.d. 296 he re-
The arguments for this conclusion are well put united Britain to the empire, after the rebel-
lay Newman. He shews that little or nothing lion of Carausius, and an independence of ten
is gained by explaining the circumstances as a years. In a.d. 305, after the abdication of
natural phenomenon or a subjective vision, if Diocletian and Maximian, Galerius and Con-
once we allow it to be providential and that stantius became Augusti, and ruled together.
;

• Mr. Whymper has given a good picture ot such As the health of Constantius began to fail, he
a phenomenon, observed by him after the fatal sent for his son Constantine, who was already
accident on the first ascent of the Matterhorn exceedingly popular, and who was jealously
{Scrambles amongst the Alps, I^ondon, 1871, p. 399). kept by Galerius at his own court. Constan-
CONSTANTIUS II. CONSTANTIUS II. 213
tine escaped, and arrived at his father's camp therefore, of his nephews Dalmatius and Han-
at Gessoriacum (Boulogne-sur-Mer) before nibalian. There followed shortly after a
embarking on another expedition to Britain. general massacre of the family of Constantius
In A.D. 306 Constantius died in the imperial Chlorus and Theodora. Many writers, and
palace at Eboracum (York). He is described those of such distinct views as St. Athanasius,
as one of the most excellent characters among Ammianus, and Zosimus as well as Julian,
the later Romans. He took the keenest in- openly charge Constantius with being the
terest in the welfare of his people, and limited author of this great crime, others imply only
his personal expenses to the verge of affecta- that he allowed it. Constantine and Constans
tion, declaring that " his most valued treasure are in no way implicated in it. A new divi-
was in the hearts of his people." The Gauls sion of empire followed ;for which purpose
delighted to contrast his gentleness and the brothers met at Sirmium. Speaking
moderation with the haughty sternness of generally, Constantine had the west, Constans
Galerius. His internal administration was as the centre, and Constantius the East.
honourable as his success in war. The Chris- From the division of empire between Con-
tians always praised his tolerance and impar- stans and Constantius we must date the
tiality. Theophanes calls him Xpi(rTiai'6(ppcx}i', beginnings of separation of the churches. The
a man of Christian principles. He had Chris- Eastern church recovered indeed at length
tians at his court. Although a pagan, he from Arian and semi-Arian influences, but the
disapproved of the persecution of Diocletian, habit of division had been formed and varie-
and contented himself by closing a few ties of theological conception became accen-
churches and overthrowing some dilapidated tuated then the Roman church grew rapidly
;

buildings, respecting (as the author of the de in power and independence, having no rival
Morte Persecutorum says) the true temple of of any pretensions in the West, while in the
God. Christianity spread in Gaul under his East the older apostolic sees were gradually
peaceful rule, and at the end of the 4th cent, subordinated to that of Constantinople, and
that province had more than 20 bishops. the whole church was constantly distracted by
Eutrop. ix. Aurel. Vict. Cues. 39, etc.
;
;
imperial interference.
Theoph. pp. 4-8, ed. Paris Eus. Vit. Const.
;
Constantius was especially ready to inter-
i. 13-21 Lactantitis, de Morte Persecutorum, 15
;
;
vene. In 341, in deference to the Dedication
Smith, D. of G. and R. Biog. Ceillier, iii. 48,
;
Council of Antioch, he forcibly intruded one
140, 579- [w.M.s.] Gregorius into the see of Alexandria ; in 342
Constantius II., son of Constantius the he sent his magister equitum, Hermogenes, to
Great, was the second of the sons of Fausta, drive Paulus from Constantinople, but he did
born at Sirmium Aug. 6, 317, and emperor not confirm Macedonius, the rival claimant
337-361. De Broglie remarks of him (iii. pp. (Socr. ii. 13). These events took place while
7, S),
" Of the sons of Constantine he was the St. Athanasius was received with honour at
one who seemed best to reproduce the quali- the court of Constans, for whose use he had
ties of his father. Although very small in prepared some books of Holy Scripture
stature, and rendered almost deformed by his (Athan. Apolog. ad Const. 4). Constans deter-
short and crooked legs, he had the same ad- mined to convoke another oecumenical coun-
dress as his father in military exercises, the cil, and obtained his brother's concurrence.
same patience under fatigue, the same sobriety The place fixed upon was Sardica, on the
in diet, the same exemplary severity in all that frontier of the Eastern and Western empires,
had regard to continence. He put forward where about 170 bishops met in 343. Then
also, with the same love for uncontrolled pre- occurred the first great open rupture between
eminence, the same literary and theological East and West, the minority consisting of
pretensions he loved to shew off his elo-
: Western bishops siding with St. Athanasius,
quence and to harangue his courtiers." Victor, while the Eastern or Eusebian faction seceded
Caes. 42, speaks well of Constantius the writer :
to Philippopolis across the border. After the
of the Epitome credits him with some virtues dissolution of the council Constans still at-
but speaksof the eunuchs, etc., who surrounded tempted to enforce the decrees of Sardica, by
him, and of the adverse influence of his wife requiring of his brother the restoration of
Eusebia. Ammianus (xxi. 16) gives an elab- Athanasius and Paulus, threatening force if
orate and balanced character of Constantius it was refused (Socr. ii. 22 Soz. iii. 20).
; The
which seems to be fair. The Christian writers shameful plots of the Arian bp. of Antioch,
were naturally not partial to an emperor who Stephen, against the messengers of Constans
leaned so constantly towards Arianism and were happily discovered, and the faith of
was such a bitter persecutor of the Nicene Constantius in the party was somewhat
faith, and did not scruple to call him Ahab, shaken (St. Athan. Htst. Arian. ad mon. 20 ;

Pilate, and Judas. St. Athanasius neverthe- Theod. ii. 9, 10). The pressure of the war
less addressed him in very complimentary with Persia no doubt inclined him to avoid
terms in the apology which he composed as anything like a civil war, and he put a stop to
late as 356. Constantius was not baptized some of the Arian persecutions. Ten months
till his last year, yet interfered in church later— after the death of the intruded Gregory
matters with the most arrogant pretensions.
Period i., 337-350.— Cows/aw^me //., Con-
— he invited St. Athanasius to return to his
see, which Athanasius did in 346, after a
stans, Constantius 11. Augusti.
,

of Constantine, Constantius hurried to Con-



On the death curious interview with the emperor at Antioch
(see the letters in Socr. ii. 23 from Athan.
stantmople for the funeral of his father. The Apol. c. Arianos, 54 f.). Other exiled bishops
armies, says Eusebius, declared unanimously were likewise restored. In the West,
that they would have none but his sons to meanwhile, Constans was occupied with the
succeed him (V. C. iv. 68)— to the exclusion, Donatists, whose case had been one of the
214 CONSTANTIUS II. CONSTANTIUS H.
elements of division at Sardica. He sent a of Athanasius. Early in 356 Syrianus, the
conciliatory mission to Africa, but his bounty duke of Egypt, began the open persecution of
was rudely refused by that Donatus who was the Catholics at Alexandria, and Constantius,
now at the head of the sect— himself a secret when appealed to, confirmed his actions and

Arian as well as a violent schismatic with the sent Heraclius to hand over all the churches
famous phrase, " Quid est imperatori cum to the Arians, which was done with great
ecclesia ? " The turbulence of the Circum- violence and cruelty {Hist. Ar. 54). George
cellions provoked the so-called " Macarian of Cappadocia was intruded into the see, and
Persecution " some of the schismatics were Athanasius was forced to hide in the desert.
;

put to death, others committed suicide, others In the same year Hilary of Poictiers was
were exiled, and so for a time union seemed to banished to Phrygia.
be produced. (Bright, pp. 58-60 Hefele,
; Meanwhile Constantius had been carrying
§ 70, Synod of Carthage. The history is in on a persecution of even greater rigour against
Optatus Milev. iii. i, 2.) Early in the year the adherents of Magnentius, which is de-
350 Constans was put to death, or rather forced scribed by Ammianus (xiv. 5), whose history
to commit suicide, by the partisans of the begins at this period. His suspicions were
usurper Magnentius. His death was a great also aroused against his cousin Gallus, whose
loss to the orthodox party, whose sufferings violence and misgovernment in the East,
durmg the next ten years were most intense. especially in Antioch, were notorious. The
Perindu., 350-361. Constantius sole Augus- means by which Constantius lured him into
tus.— The usurpation of Magnentius in Gaul his power and then beheaded him are very
seems to have been largely a movement of characteristic (Amm. xiv. 11). At the end of
paganism against Christianity and of the the same year, 355, he determined to make his
provincial army against the court. It was younger brother, Julian, caesar in his place,
closely followed by another, that of Vetranio putting him over the provinces of Gaul, and
in Illyria. We need not follow the strange marrying him to his sister Helena.
history of these civil wars, nor recount in In the church worse things were yet to
detail how Vetranio was overcome by the come the fall of Hosius, who accepted the creed
:

eloquence of Constantius in 350, and Magnen- of the second council of Sirmium, then that
tius beaten in the bloody battle of Mursa, of Liberius, the first after torture and severe
Sept. 351, that cost the Roman empire 50,000 imprisonment, the second after two years of
men. Between these two events Constantius melancholy exile, both in 357. Of the numer-
named his cousin, Gallus, caesar and attended ous councils and synods at this time, the most
the first council of Sirmium. Some time be- famous and important was that of Rimini in
fore the battle he must have received the letter 359, in conjunction with one in the East at
from St. Cyril of Jerusalem, describing a cross Seleucia, when the political bishops succeeded
of light which appeared " on May 7, about the in carrying an equivocal creed approved by
third hour," " above the holy Golgotha and the emperor, and omitting the homoousion.
stretching as far as the holy mount of Olives," Constantius, tired of the long controversy, at-
and seen by the whole city. St. Cyril praises tempted to enforce unity by imposing the for-
Constantius and reports this marvel as an mula of Rimini everywhere, and a number of
encouragement to him in his campaign. The bishops of various parties were deposed (Soz.
genuineness of the letter has however been iv. 23, 24). In 360 Julian was proclaimed
doubted, especially from the word " consub- Augustus by his army, and proposed a division
stantial " appearing in the doxology at the of the empire, which Constantius did not
end. At the time of the battle of Mursa accept (Amm. xx. 8). A civil war was impend-
Constantius came much under the influence of ing :Constantius was at first contemptuous,
Valens, the temporizing bishop of the place, but ere long began to be haunted with fears of
who pretended that the victory was revealed death, and caused himself to be baptized by
to him by an angel, and from this time he Euzoius, the Arian bp. of Antioch. He
appears more distinctly as a persecutor of the expired, after a painful illness, at Mopsucrene
Nicene faith, which he endeavoured to crush at the foot of mount Taurus, Nov. 4, 361
in the West. His general character also under- (Socr. ii. 47 Amm. xxi. 15).
;
He was at
went a change for the worse after the un- least three times married in 352 or 353, after
:

expected suicide of Magnentius, which put the successful issue of the civil war, to Aurelia
him in sole possession of the empire. It is Eusebia, a very beautiful, accomplished, and
difficult to say whether he appears to least gentle lady, but an Arian, who had great in-
advantage in the pages of Ammianus or of St. fluence with him. She died some time before
Athanasius. It would take too long to re- the usurpation of Julian. Besides his wives,
count the disgraceful proceedings at the coun- on whom he was accustomed to lean, his chief
Aries in 353, where the legates of the new
cil of adviser was the eunuch Eusebius, of whom
Pope Liberius were misled, or at Milan in 355, Ammianus says so sarcastically, " apud quem,
when Constantius declared that his own will si vere dici debet, multum Constantius pot-
should serve the Westerns for a canon as it uit." He also trusted much to a detestable
had served the Syrian bishops, and proceeded man the notary Paulus, nicknamed Catena.
to banish and imprison no less than 147 of the Another of the same class was Mercurius,
chief orthodox clergy and laity (Hist. Ar. ad called Comes Somniorum. These men, with
Mon. 33, etc. see De Broglie, iii. p. 263). The
; an army of spies (curiosi), organized a reign of
most important sufferers were Eusebius of terror for three years after the overthrow of
Vercelli, Lucifer of Cagliari, and Dionysius Magnentius, especially in Britain, acting par-
of Milan. Soon after followed the exile of ticularly on the laws against sacrifice and
Liberius, and in 355 that of Hosius. All this magic (cf. Liban. pro Aristophane, i. p. 439)-
was intended to lead up to the final overthrow Laws in Favour of Christianity. —These will
;

CORNELIUS COSMAS 215

be found chiefly in the second title of book xvi. ence was kept alive by the discontent of the
of the Theodosian code, headed de episcopis minority within both the churches. This
ecclesiis et clericis. In 357 the emperor con- was represented at Carthage by Novatus, who
firmed all the privileges granted to the church separated from the church when unable to
of Rome, at that time under the emperor's obtain less harsh terms in Rome by a man
;

nominee, Felix, whilst Liberius was in exile. of similar name, Novatian, who was in favour
Another rescript of the same year is addressed of greater rigour than the church would allow.
to Felix, more explicitly guaranteeing the im- Novatus crossed the sea to aid Novatian in
munity from taxation and forced service. The designs at Rome which must have been
next law (a.d. 360) refers to the synod of directly opposed to his own at Carthage.
Rimini, and the opinion expressed by various Mainly by his influence Novatian was conse-
bishops from different parts of Italy, and from crated a bishop, and thus constituted the head
Spain and Africa. The last law in the series of a schismatic body in Rome. Eusebius
(in 361) is remarkable, as the heading gives (Hist. Eccl. vi. 43) quotes from a letter of bp.
Julian the title of Augustus. Cornelius to bp. Fabius of Antioch, in which
Relations to Heathenism. —The state of things he gives an account of his rival, with statistics
that we have seen in the last years of Constan- as to the number of Roman clergy in his day.
tine continued during his son's reign. There These were 46 priests, 7 deacons, 7 subdeacons,
was the same disposition on the part of the 42 acolytes, 52 exorcists, 52 readers and
empire to put down paganism and the same ostiarii; 1,500 widows and orphans were pro-
elements of reaction. In the West, especially vided for by the church.
in Rome, real heathenism still retained much The Novatianist heresy gave rise to a cor-
of its vitality and still swayed the minds of respondence between Cyprian and Cornelius.
the aristocracy and the populace in the East
;
Persecution was revived in Rome by Gallus,
the supporters of the old religion were the and Cornelius, followed by almost the whole
philosophers and rhetoricians, men more at- church (among whom were many restored
tached to its literary and artistic associations libellatics), took refuge at Centumcellae in
than prepared to defend polytheism as a Etruria. There Cornelius died, and another
creed. They were mixed up with another bishop, Lucius, was at the head of the church
class,the theurgists, practisers of a higher kind when it returned. It is doubtful whether
of magic which was particularly attractive to Cornelius died a violent death. Cyprian and
Julian. The following laws from the tenth Jerome both speak of him as a martyr. He
title of book xvi. of the Theodosian code died Sept. 14, 252. His name as a martyr has
relate distinctly to heathen sacrifice. Sec. 2, been found in the Catacombs at some little
in 341, issued by Constantius, says " Cesset
: distance from those of other popes, and in a
superstitio, sacrificiorum aboleatur insania," cemetery apparently devoted almost exclu-
and refers to the law of Constantine noticed sively to the gens Cornelia, whence De Rossi
above. A
year or two later (the date is un- argues that he probably belonged to that
certain and wrongly given in the code), Con- patrician gens (Roma Sotterranea, byNorthcote
stantius and Constans ordered the temples in and Brownlow, pp. 177-183). [g.h.m.]
Roman territory to be kept intact for the Cosmas (1) and Damianus, brothers, phy-
pleasure of the Roman people, though all sicians, " silverless " martyrs. They became
"superstition" is to be eradicated; almost types of a class, the avapyvpot., " silverless "
at the same time they issued a law to the prae-martyrs, i.e. physicians who took no fees, but
torian prefect inflicting death and confiscation
went about curing people gratis, and claiming
on persons sacrificing. In 353 Constantius as their reward that those whom they bene-
forbade the " nocturna sacrificia " permitted fited should believe in Christ. They were
by Magnentius in 356 he and Julian made it certainly not earlier than the last quarter of
:

capital to sacrifice or worship images, [j.w.] the 3rd cent., and the legends of martyrs of that
Cornelius (2), bp. of Rome, successor of time, whose fame is known only by popular
Fabianus, said to have been son of Castinus. tradition, seem in many cases to succeed natur-
After the martyrdom of Fabianus in Jan. 250, ally to the place of those heathen myths that
in the Decian persecution, the see remained were slowest to die. For Hercules, Christopher
vacant for a year andahalf. In June, a.d. 251, for Apollo, Sebastian ; for Diana, Ursula ; for
Cornelius was elected to the vacant post and,
; Proserpine, Agnes. Cosmas and Damian take
although very reluctantly, he accepted an the place of Aesculapius, in whose story
election almost unanimously made by both heathenism made the nearest approach to
orders, during the life of a tyrant who had Christianity. The Greeks distinguished three
declared that he would rather see a new pre- pairs of these brothers, (i) July i, in the time
tender to the empire than a new bishop of of Carinus ; (2) Oct. 27, Arabs, with their
Rome (Cyprian, Ep. lii.). Decius was at that brothers, Anthimus, Leontius, and Euprepius,
time absent from Rome, prosecuting the martyred under Diocletian (3) Nov. i, sons
;

Gothic war which ended in his death in the of Theodote. (Menol.) For the legends con-
winter of the same year. The persecution of nected with them see D. C. B. (4- vol. ed. ). The
the Christians thus came to an end ; but then names were early inserted in the Canon of the
arose the difficult question of how to treat the Mass. [E.B.B.]
libellatici, Christians who had bought their life Cosmas (3), surnamed Indicopleustes (In-
by the acceptance of false certificates of having dian navigator), a native of Egypt, probably
sacrificed to heathen gods. Cornelius took a of Alexandria (lib. ii. 114, vi. 264), originally
Ime at variance with that of Cyprian and the a merchant (lib. ii. 132, iii. 178, xi. 336), who
church of Carthage, which required rigorous flourished about the middle of the 6th cent.
penance as the price of readmission, while In pursuit of his mercantile business he navi-
Ronie prescribed milder terms. The differ- gated the Mediterranean, Red Sea, and Persian

216 COSMAS COSMAS


Gulf, also visiting India and Ceylon. His the sun passes in the evening, and reappears
travels enabled Cosmas to collect a large store on the other side in the morning. The
of information respecting not only the coun- conical shape of the mountain produces the
tries he visited, but also the more remote lands variation in the length of the night ; as the
whose merchants he met. Weary of the world sun rises higher above, or sinks down towards
and its gains, he resigned his occupation as a the level of the earth. Eclipses are due to
merchant, and, embracing a monastic life, the same cause. The round shadow on the
devoted his leisure to authorship, enriching moon's disk is cast by the domical summit of
his writings with descriptions of the countries the mountain (lib. iv. 188).
he had visited and with facts he had observed The views on cosmography thus propounded,
or learned from others. He was no retailer of absurd and irrational as they appear to us,
travellers' wonders, and later researches have were those generally entertained by the Fathers
proved that his descriptions are as faithful as of the church. Pinning their faith on the
his philosophy is absurd. literal meaning of the words of Scripture ac-
His Christian Topography (12 books) is his cording to its traditional interpretation, they
only work which has survived the last book deduced a system which had for them all the
;

is deiicient in the Vatican MS. and imperfect authority of a divine revelation, any depar-
in the Medicean. The work was not all pub- ture from which was regarded as impious and
lished at one time, nor indeed originally heretical. The arguments by which Cosmas
planned in its present extent but gradually supports his theory are chiefly built on isolated
;

grew as book after book was added by him passages of Scripture, as interpreted by the
at the request of his friends, or to meet the early Fathers. Some, however, are drawn from
objections of the opponents of his theory. reason and the nature of the case e.g. the
The proximate date, a.d. 547, for the earlier absurdity of the supposition of the existence
books is afforded by the statement (lib. ii. 140) of antipodean regions, inasmuch as the beings
that, when he wrote, 25 years had elapsed since on the other side of the world must drop off,
the expedition of Elesbaon, king of the Axiom- and the rain would fall upwards instead of
itae, against the Homeritae, which Pagi ad downwards ; while the supposed rotatory
ann. dates a.d. 522. The later works were motion of the universe is disproved by the
written about 13 years subsequently. Near disturbance that would be caused to the repose
the end of lib. x. he speaks of the recent death of the blessed in heaven by their being per-
of Timotheus, patriarch of Alexandria, a.d. petually whirled through space. Cosmas de-
536, and mentions his heretical successor nounces as heretics those who, following the
Theodosius, a.d. 537. false lights of science, venture to maintain
The chief design of the Christian Topography opposite views, and speaks in terms of strong-
is " to confute the impious heresy of those who est condemnation of " men who assume the
maintain that the earth is a globe, and not a name of Christians, and yet in contempt of
flat oblong table, as is represented in the Holy Scripture join with the pagans in assert-
Scriptures " (Gibbon, Decline and Fall, c. ing that the heavens are spherical. Such
xlvii. § i. note i.). The old objections of the assertions are among the weapons hurled at
Epicureans are revived, and the plane surface the church. Inflamed by pride as if they were
is not circular as with Thales, but a parallelo- wiser than others, they profess to explain the
gram twice as long as broad, surrounded by movements of the heavens by geometrical and
the ocean. Its length from E. to W. is 12,000 astronomical calculations " (lib. i. Prolog.).
miles ; its breadth from N. to S. 6,000. The One of his strongest arguments in support of
parallelogram is symmetrically divided by his plan of the universe is drawn from the form
four gulfs ; the Caspian (which joins the of the Tabernacle of Witness, which the words
Ocean), the Arabian (Red Sea), the Persian, dyiov KocTfxiKdi' (Heb. ix. i) warrant him in
and that of the Romans (Mediterranean). Be- considering to have been like Noah's Ark, ex-
yond the ocean, on each side of the interior pressly constructed as an image of the world.
continent, lies another land, in which is the The subjects of the 12 books are (i ) Against
:

Garden of Eden. Here men lived till the those who claim to be Christians, and assert
Deluge, when Noah and his family crossed with pagans that the earth is spherical. (2)
the intervening flood in the Ark, and peopled The Christian hypothesis as to the figure and
the present world. The rivers of Paradise he position of the universe proved from Scripture.
supposes to run under the sea, Alpheus-like, (3) The agreement on these points of the O.T.
and to reappear in our earth. The Nile is the and N.T. (4) A brief recapitulation, and a
Gihon of Eden. The whole area is surrounded description of the figure of the universe accord-
by lofty perpendicular walls, from the summit ing to Scripture, and a confutation of the
of which the sky stretches from N. to S. in a sphere. (5) A description of the Tabernacle
cylindrical vault, meeting similar vaults at and the agreement of the Prophets and
either extremity (lib. iv. 186, 187). Our author Apostles. (6) The magnitude of the sun. (7)
divides this huge vaulted chamber into lower, The duration of the heavens. (8) Hezekiah's
second, and third stories. The dead occupy the song, and the retrogression of the sun. {9)
nethermost division the middle compartment The course of the stars. (10) Testimonies of
;

is the home of the living; the uppermost, that the Fathers, including 11 citations from the
of the blessed. Heaven is divided from the Festal Epistles of Athanasius, and other im-
lower regions by a solid firmament, through portant Patristic fragments. (11) A descrip-

which Christ penetrated and that is the tion of the animals of India, and of the island
Kingdom of Heaven (lib. iv. 186-188). The of Ceylon. (12) Testimoniesof heathen writers
vicissitudes of day and night are caused by a to the antiquity of Holy Scripture.
mountain of enormous bulk, rising at the N. Setting aside the absurdities of his cosmo-
extremity of the oblong area. Behind this graphical system, Cosmas is ope of the nio§t
COSMAS CYPRIANUS 217

valuable geographical writers of antiquity. is used in the former, the first in the latter, the
His errors were those of his age, and rest two have been carelessly printed continuously
chiefly on his reverence for the traditional and regarded as both relating to the conquests
interpretation of the Bible. But he was an of Ptolemy, who has been thus accredited with
acute observer and vivid describer, and his fabulous Aethiopian conquests. (So in Fabri-
good faith is unquestionable. He seems well cius, Bibl. Graec. lib. iii. 25 cf. Vincent, ;

acquainted with the Indian peninsula, and Commerce, ii. 533-589.) They were first dis-
names several places on its coast. He de- tinguished from each other by Mr. Salt (Voy-
scribes it as the chief seat of the pepper trade, ages and Travels to India, etc., 1809, vol. iii.
of which he gives a very rational account, and 192 Travels in Abyssinia, 1814, p. 412), and
;

mentions Mali, in which Montfaucon recog- are printed with full comments by Bockh
nizes the origin of Malabar, as much fre- (Corpus Inscript. Graec. 1848, vol. iii. fasc.
quented by traffickers in that spice. He fur- ii. 508-514). The inscription relating to
nishes a detailed account of the island of Tap- Ptolemy describes his conquest of nearly the
robana (Ceylon), which he calls Sielidiba, then whole of the empire of the Seleucidae, in Asia,
the principal centre of trade between China which, saj's Dean Vincent (Ancient Commerce,
(he calls the Chinese T^n'rfai) and the Persian ii. 531), " was scarcely discovered in history

Gulf and Red Sea, where the merchants ex- till this monument prompted the inquiry, and
changed their costly wares, and the nations of was then established on proofs undeniable."
the East obtained the advantages of commer- Cf. Chishull, Antiq. Asiat. p. 76 Niebuhr, ;

cial intercourse, which rapidly increased and Vermischte Schriften, p. 401 Letronne, ;

had in his time assumed considerable import- Materiaux pour I'hist. du Christianisme en
ance. The connexion between Persia and Egypte, etc. (1832), p. 401 Buttmann, Mus. ;

India was at that time evidenced by the exist- der Alterthumsw. ii. i, p. 105.
ence of a large number of Christian churches, A account of this work is given by
full
both on the coast of India and the islands of Photius (Cod. xxxvi.), under the inappropriate
Socotra and Ceylon, served by priests and title 'Epfj.r]vela eis 'OKTCLTevxov, but without
deacons ordained by the Persian archbp. of the author's name. From this, Fabricius very
Seleucia and subject to his jurisdiction, which needlessly questions whether the author was
had produced multitudes of faithful martyrs really named Cosmas, or whether that was an
and monks (lib. iii. 179). These congregations appellation coined to suit the subject of the
appear to be identical with the Malabar Chris- work, like that of Joannes Climacus. Photius
tians of St. Thomas. His nth book contains censures the homeliness of the style, which he
a very graphic and faithful description of the considers hardly to approach mediocrity. But
more remarkable animal and vegetable pro- elegance or refinement of diction is not to be
ductions of India and Ceylon, the rhinoceros, expected from a writer, who, in his own words
elephant, giraffe, hippopotamus, etc., the (lib. ii. 124), destitute of literary training and
cocoa-nut tree, pepper tree, etc. entangled in business, had devoted his whole
His remarks on Scripture manifest a not life to mercantile pursuits, and had to contend
altogether uncommon mixture of credulity against the disadvantages of very infirm health
and good sense. He mentions that, to the and weak eyesight, incapacitating him for
discomfiture of unbelievers, the marks of the lengthened study. We learn from his own
chariot wheels of the Egyptians were still writings that Cosmas also wrote :

visible at Clysma, where the Israelites crossed (i) A Cosmographia Universalis, dedicated
the Red Sea (v. 194) ; but he explains the to a certain Constantine (lib. i. 113), the loss of
supposed miraculous preservation of the gar- which is lamented with tears by Montfaucon.
ments of the Israelites (Deut. xxix. 5) as (2) A work on the motions of the universe
meaning no more than that they lacked and the heavenly bodies, dedicated to the
nothing, since merchants visited them from deacon Homologus (lib. i. 114, vii. 274).
adjacent countries with clothing and with the (3) 'TTTO/UfT^yaara on the Canticles, dedicated
wheat of which the shewbread was made (v. to Theophilus (lib. vii. 300).
205). The catholic epistles he plainly relegates Exposition of the more difficult parts of
(4)
to the " Amphilegomena," making the errone- the Psalms (Du Cange, Gloss. Graec. s.v. '\v-
ous statement that such was the universal diKOTrXevarris Bibl. Coislin. p. 244).
;

ancient tradition and that no early expositor (Montfaucon,Collect. Nov. Pat. Gk. (Paris,
comments upon them. The Ep. to the Hebrews 1706), vol. ii. 113-346; Gallandi, Bibl. Vet.
he ascribes to St. Paul, and asserts that it, as Patr. (Ven. 1765), vol. ix. Cave, Hist. Lit. i. ;

well as the Gospel of St. Matt., was rendered Fabric. Bibl. Graec. lib. iii. 25 Vincent,
515 ; ;

into Gk. by St. Luke or St. Clement. Cosmas Commerce, ii. 505-511, 533-537, 567 ; Bredow,
preserves a monument of very considerable Strabo, ii. 786-797 ; Thevenot,
Coll. des voy-
historical value, consisting of two inscriptions ages, vol. i. ; Gosselin, Geogr. syst. des Grecs, iii.
relating to Ptolemy Euergetes, B.C. 247-222, Mannert, Einleit. in der Geogr. d. Alten,
274 ;

and an unnamed king of the Axumitae, of 188-192 Charton, Voyages, vol. ii.) [e.v.]
later date. These were copied by him from
;

Cyprianus (i) Thascius Caecilius. Name. —


the originals at the entrance of the city of He is styled Thascius Cyprianus by the pro-
Adule, an Aethiopian port on the Red Sea the; consul (Vit. Pontii), and styles himself " Cypri-
former from a wedge-shaped block of basanite anus qui et Thascius " in the singular heading
or touch-stone, standing behind a white marble of Ep. 66. He took the name Caecilius,
chair, dedicated to Mars and ornamented with according to Jerome (Cat. III. Vir. v.), from
the figures of Hercules and Mercury, on the presbyter who converted him, and is
which the latter inscription was engraved. called Caecilius Cyprianus in the proscription
Notwithstanding the different localities of the (Ep. 66).
inscriptions and the fact that the third person Cyprian was an orator, and afterwards even
218 CYPRIANUS CYPRIANUS
a teacher of rhetoric (" in tantam gloriam arguments was probably not ineffective, but
venit eloquentiae ut oratoriam quoque doceret as yet Cyprian exhibits no conception that
Carthagini," Hieron. Comm. Jon. c. 3, and of. Christianity is to be a world-regenerating
Aug. Serm. 312, § 4). It is not quite clear power. He deliberately excludes providence
what is meant by Jeromein speaking of from history [Quod Id. v.).
him asformer " adsertor idololatriae,"
a At the Easter following, the season most
and Augustine as " having decorated the observed in Africa for this purpose, he was
crumbling doctrines of demons." His style probably baptized, and to the autumn after
is very polished, and, as Augustine points out, we refer the ad Donatum, a monologue, a brief
became more simple and beautiful with time, Tusculanheld in his own villa, on The Grace of
and (as his critic believed) with the purer tasteGod. It already exhibits Cyprian not as a
of Christianity. He edited for Christians the spiritual analyst or subtle theologian, but ir-
phraseological dictionary of Cicero (see Har- refragable in his appeals to the distinctly New
tel'spraef. ad fin.). His systematic habits and Life which has appeared in the world, amid
powers of business contributed greatly to his the contemporary degradations the repudia- —
success as the first of church organizers. His tion of the responsibility of wealth, the dis-
address was dignified, conciliatory, affection- ruption of the client-bond, the aspect of the
ate ;his looks attractive by their grave criminal classes, the pauperization of the mass,
joyousness. He never assumed the philo- and the systematic corruption by theatre and
"
sopher's pall, which Tertullian his " master arena. For the present, however, withdrawal
maintained to be the only dress for Christians ;
from the world into Christian circles is the only
he thought its plainness pretentious. Augus- remedy in which he can hope. " Divine Grace "
tine speaks of the tradition of his gentleness, is an ascertained psychological fact, and this,
and he never lost the friendship of heathens of though as yet narrow in application, is the
high rank (Pont. 14). He was wealthy, his subject of the treatise.
landed property considerable, and his house He soon after sold, for the benefit of the
and gardens beautiful (Pont. Vit. ad Don. poor, his horti, which some wealthy friends
i. XV. xvi.). bought up afterwards and presented to him
His conversion was then important in the again. Meantime he resided with Caecilian.
series of men of letters and law who were at We can only understand the expression of
this time added to the church, and who so Pontius (who lived similarly as a deacon with
markedly surpass in style and culture their Cyprian), " erat sane illi etiam de nobis con-
heathen contemporaries. Pearson rightly sets tubernium . Caeciliani," to mean that he
. .

aside the inference of Baronius (from De Dei was at that time " of our body," the diaconate.
gratia) that Cyprian was old at his conversion, We find other instances of the closeness of this
but that he was so seems to be stated, however bond. Baronius and Bp. Fell are equally in-
obscurely, (c. 2, " adhuc rudis fidei
by Pontius excusable in understanding what is said of
et cui nondum
forsitan crederetur supergressus Caecilian's family and of Job's wife as having
vetustatis actatem "). Christian doctrines, any bearing upon the question of Cyprian's
especially that of regeneration, had previously celibacy There is no indication of his having
excited his wonder, but not his derision {ad been married. Caecilian at his death com-
Don. iii. iv.). He was converted by an aged mended his family to him, although not as
presbyter, Caecilian. During his catechesis officially curator or tutor, which would have
he analysed and conversed with the circle contradicted both Christian and Roman usage.
about him on Scripture Lives, devoted him- —
His Ordination. His activity while a mem-
self to chastity, and sold some estates and ber of the ordo or concessus of presbyters is
distributed the proceeds to the poor. He noticed, but he was yet a neophyte when he
composed, in his Quod Idola dii nan sint, a became bishop. The step was justified on the
Christian assault on Polytheism, freely com- ground of his exceptional character, but the
piling the ist and 2nd sections of his tract from opposition organized by five presbyters was
Minucius, § 20-27, § 18, § 32, and his 3rd section now and always a serious difficulty to him.
from Tertullian's Apology, § 21-23, with some The Plebes would listen to no refusal, and
traces of Tert. de A nima naturaliter Christiana. frustrated an 'attempt to escape. He subse-
A comparison of this pamphlet with the ori- quently rests his title (Ep. 43, Ep. 66, Vit.) on
ginals well illustrates his ideal of style. He their suffrages, and on the " judicium Dei,"
mainly retains the very language, but erases with the consensus of his fellow bishops. In
whatever seemed rugged, ambiguous, or ordinary cases he treats the election by neigh-
strained. He maintains a historical kernel of bour bishops as necessary to a valid episcopate
mythology, points out the low character of (Ep. 57, V.; Ep. 59, vii. Ep. 66). From this
;

indigenous Roman worship illustrates the


; time Cyprian is usually addressed both by
activity of deluding daemons from the scenes others and by the Roman clergy as Papa,
at exorcisms, of which, however, he scarcely though the title is not attributed to the bp.
seems (as Tertullian does) to have been an eye- of Rome until long after. An earlier instance
witness. He contrasts this with the doctrine of the use of the name occurs at Alexandria,
of Divine unity, which he describes nobly, but probably the first application of the
but illustrates infelicitously. The history of name is traceable to Carthage. Some time
Judaism, its rejection of its Messiah, and the between July 248 and April 249 Cyprian be-
effects which Christianity is producing in the came bishop, a few months before the close of
individual and commencing on society bring the " thirty years' peace " of the church.
him to his new standpoint. He is perhaps the His Theory of the Episcopal Office seems to
first writer who uses the continuous sufferings have been his own already, and as it supplies
of believers as evidence of their credibility. the key to his conception of church govern-
This restatement and co-ordination of previous ment may be stated at once. The episcopate

CYPRIANUS CYPRIANUS 219

succeededtothe Jewish priesthood * {Epp. 8, i.; of childlike innocence, yet with the avowed
69, viii. ; 65 ; 67, i. ; Testim.iu. 85) ; the bishop object of rendering their order attractive.
was the instructor (Ep. 50, xi. ;
Unit, x.) and Vanity, sentiment, and the sense of security
the judge {Ep. 17, ii.). In this latter capacity were still mischievous elements, and Cyprian
he does nothing without the information and writes mainly against the extravagant fashions,
advice of presbyters, deacon, and laity. He half Roman, half Tyrian, in which the wealth-
is the apostle of his flock (Ep. 3, iii. 45 66, ; ;
ier sisters appeared. His book, though in
iv.) by direct succession, and the diaconate is language drawing largely from Tertullian's
the creation of his predecessors. The usual treatise of similar title, resembles much more
parallel between the three orders of the Chris- in matter and aim his Ctiltus Feminarum.
tian and Jewish ministry differs entirely from Cyprian is here so minute and fastidious in his
that drawn by Cyprian. reduction of the violent rhetoric of Tertullian
The stress laid on the responsibility of the that this might almost pass for a masterly
laity is very great. Though the virtue of the study of writing and Augustine regards it as
;

office is transmitted by another channel, it is a very perfect work, drawing from it illustra-
they who, by the " aspiration of God," ad- tions both of the " grand " and of the " tem-
dress to each bishop his call to enter on that perate " style (Aug. de Doctrina Christiana,
" priesthood " and its grace, and it is their bk. iv. pp. 78, 86). In estimating the prob-
duty to withdraw from his administration if able influence of this booklet on ascetic life,
heisa "sinner" (Ep. 67). The bishops do not it is not satisfactory to find that the incentives

co-opt into or enlarge their own college. Each used are partly low and partly overstrained
is elected by his own Plebes. Hence he is the the escape from married troubles, espousals
embodiment of it. " The bishop is in the with Christ, higher rank in the resurrection ;

church and the church in the bishop." They while efficiency in works of charity, the power
have no other representatives in councils he ; of purity, self-sacrifice and intercession, are
is naturally their " member." These views not dwelt upon.
appear fully developed in his first epistle, and —
Testimonia ad Quirinum, libb. iii. These,
in the application of texts in his early Testi- though not certainly belonging to this time,
monia it is incredible that they should have
; are more like his work now than afterwards.
been borrowed from paganism, and unhis- They are texts compiled for a layman (filius).
torical to connect them with Judaizers. They I. in 24 heads on the succession of the Gentile
are (although Cyprian does not dwell on this to the Jewish church. II. 30 heads on the
aspect) not incompatible with a recognition Deity, Messiahship, and salvation of Christ.
of the priesthood of the laity as full as that III. 120 on Christian duty. The skill and toil
of Tertullian. The African episcopate had of such a selection are admirable. The im-
declined in character during the long peace ;
portance of the text in elucidation of the Latin
many bishops were engaged in trade, agricul- versions then afloat is immense, and Hartel is
ture, or usury, some were conspicuously quite dissatisfied with what he has been able
fraudulent or immoral or too ignorant to to contribute to this object (Hartel, Praefat.
instruct catechumens and avoid using here- Cyp. p. xxiii.).
tical compositions in public prayers (de Laps. —
Decian Persecution. Cyprian's conviction
4 ; Ep. 65, iii. Atict. de Rebapt. ix.
; Aug. ; of the need of external chastisements for the
c. Don. vii. 45 Resp. ad Epp. [Sedatus]).
; worldliness of the church was supported by
Similarly among the presbyters strange occu- intimations which he felt to be supernatural.
pations were possible (Tert. de Idol. cc. 7-9) The edict which began to fulfil them in the end
and unmarried deacons shared their chambers of A.D. 249 aimed at effecting its work by the
with spiritual sisters who maintained their removal of leaders, and at first fixed capital
chastity to be unimpaired. The effect of the penalties on the bishops only (Rettberg, p. 54 ;

persecution was salutary on this state of Ep. 66, vii.). Monotheism, even when licensed
things, and was felt to be so. To the eighteen (like Judaism), had an anti-national aspect,
months of " peace " which remained belong and Christianity could not be a licita religio,
his Epp. 1-4, and the treatise on the dress of simply because it was not the established wor-
virgins, which answers to his description of his ship of any locality or race. In this, and in
employment as " serving discipline " during the fact that torture was applied to procure
that interval. In three of the letters his not (as in other accusations) confession but
authority is invoked beyond his diocese, and denial of the charge (Apol. ii. ;Cyp. ad Demet.
wears something of a metropolitan aspect. xii. 11), in the encouragement of delation as to
Otherwise it is to be noticed that the African private meetings (Dig. xlviii. 4 ;Cod. ix. 8,
bishops rank by seniority. To these letters iv. vi. vii.), and in the power given to magis-
Mr. Shepherd has taken objections, which, if trates under standing edicts to apply the test
valid, would be fatal to the genuineness of of sacrifice at any moment to a neighbourhood
much of the Cyprianic correspondence but a ; or a person, lay the various unfairnesses of
rigorous investigation of those objections is which Tertullian and Cyprian complain. Dio-
conclusive in favour of the epistles. nysius of Alexandria, and with him Origen,
De Habitu Virgintim. Many Christian
women lived, as a " work of piety," the self-
— Gregory Thaumaturgus, Maximus of Nola,
Babylas of Antioch, Alexander of Jerusalem,
dedicated life of virgins in their own homes. Fabian of Rome, were all attacked, the last
Tertullian had killed the fashion of going un- three martyred. There was no fanaticism of
veiled, which some had claimed as symbolic martyrdom as yet. It seemed wrong to ex-
• The bishop alone is called sacerdos pose a successor to instant death, and no
throughout
the Cyprianic correspondence. The presbyter also bishop was elected for 16 months at Rome.
answers to the I<evitic tribe each congregation ;
Like the former three, Cyprian placed himself
(diocese) to " the congregation of Israel." (before the end of Jan. Lipsius, Rom. Bisch.
;
; '

220 CYPRIANUS CYPRIANUS


Chronol. p. 200) out of reach, and, with the of their greatest chiefs (cf. Ep. x. 24). Their
same determination with which he afterwards libelli would presently have superseded all
pronounced that his time was come, refused other terms of communion.
conceahnent. The grounds for his retirement, A strange document (Ep. 23) is extant in the
consistently stated by himself, are the neces- form of an absolution to " all the lapsed " from
sity of continuing the administration (Ep. 12, " all the confessors," which the bishops are
i. V. vi.), the danger which at Carthage he desired to promulgate. Rioters in some of the
would have attracted to others (Epp. 7, 14), provincial towns extorted communion from
the riots it would have aroused {Ep. 43), and their presbyters (Ep. 27, iii.). At Rome itself
the insistence of Tertullus (E^/). 12, 14). The the influence of Novatian with the confessors
Cyprianic epistles of this period, passing be- created a tendency to strictness rather than
tween the Roman presbyters, the Carthaginian indulgence, and there were no such disorders,
bishop and certain imprisoned presbyters but they prevailed elsewhere (Epp. 27, 31,
(Moyses, Maximus), deacons (Rufinus and 32 ; Ep. 30, iv. 4 ; 30, vii.). Cyprian at once
Nicostratus), laymen, and particularly an proposed by separate letters to his clergy and
imperfectly educated Carthaginian confessor laity(to whom he writes with warm confidence),
Celerinus (whose ill-spelt letters Epp. 21 and to various bishops, and to the Roman con-
22 are extant), present, when worked out, a fessors and clergy (Epp. 15, 16, 17, 26), one
tesselated coherence with each other and with general course of action : to reserve all cases
slight notices in Eusebius (vi. 43), which is of lapsed, without regard to the confessors'
absolutely convincing as to the originality and libelli, until episcopal councils at Rome and
genuineness of the documents. Carthage should lay down terms of readmis-

The Lapsi. Five commissioners in each sion for the deserving (Ep. 20 ; 55, iv.) then^
;

town and the proconsul on circuit (Epp. 43, iii. the bishops, with clergy and laity (Ep. 17, iv.;
10; 56) administered the Decian edict. The Ep. 31) assisting, to investigate each case ;

sufferings by torture, stifling imprisonments, public acknowledgment to be made, readmis-


and even fire (14, 21) were very severe sion to be by imposition of hands by bishop
{Ep. 22). Women and boys were among the and clergy. Meantime the acts of the con-
victims. Exile and confiscation were em- fessors to be recognized (Ep. 20, iii.) so far
ployed. In the first terror there was a large as that persons in danger, who might hold a
voluntary abjuration of Christianity, whether libellus, should be readmitted by any presby-
literally by " the majority of his flock " (Ep. ter, or in extremis by a deacon (Epp. 18, 19).
11) may be uncertain, but Cyprian felt himself All others to be exhorted to repentance, and
" seated in the ruins of his house." Scenes of commended with prayer to God at their
painful vividness are touched in, but these
must be passed by. Many of the clergy fell
deaths. The grounds he urged were
wideness of the question, which was too large
— (i) the

or fled, leaving scarcely enough for the daily for individual discretion (totius orbis, Ep. 19,
duty of the city (Epp. 34, iv. 40; 29), as
;
iii. cf. 30, vi.). (2) That if restored at once the
did many provincial bishops (Epp. 11, 59). lapsed would have fared better than those who
Different classes of those who conformed were had borne the loss of all for Christ. These
the Thurificati, Sacrificati (the more heinous) principles are developed also in the de Lapsis,
{Ep. 59), and Libellatici (q.v. in D. C. A., which, however, is not quite as M. Freppel de-
as also LiBELLi), whose self-excision was less scribes it, " a resume of the letters," but a
palpable. Of this class there were some resume of the modified views of Cyprian a little
thousands {Ep. 24). later. In M. Freppel's Sorbonne Lectures (St.
Formation of a General Policy. —
Cyprian Cyprien, pp. 195-221) may be studied with
from his retirement guided the policy of the profit the Ultramontane representation of this
whole West upon the tremendous questions scheme as equivalent to the modern indulgence
of church communion which now arose, (i) system, backed by assertions that the Roman
Indifferentism offered the lapsed an easy re- church " indicated to Carthage the only
turn by means of indulgences from, or in the course," which Cyprian "fully adopted." All,
names of, martyrs. Puritanism barred all
(2) however, that the Roman clergy had recoin-
return. The Roman first essayed to deal
clergy mended was mere readmission of sick peni-
with the question in conjunction with the clergy tents, without any conception of a policy, or
of Carthage independently of Cyprian, whose of the method by which it could be worked.
absence they invidiously deplore (Ep. viii.). These are developed step by step in Epp. 17,
Their letter was returned to them by Cyprian 18, 19, and communicated to the Roman
himself, with some caustic remarks on its style church (Ep. 20). In replying through Nova-
(which are singularly incorrect ; see Hartel's tian (Ep. 30, see 55 v.) the Roman presbyters
Praefatio, xlviii.) as well as on the irregularity and adopt them (cf. Ep. 31, vi. 41).
re-state
of the step. After this an altered tone, and Temper in Carthage.—Through the earlier
Novatian's marked style, is discernible in theirpart of the above section of correspondence is
letters (Epp. 30 and ? 36). perceptible a reliance on the laity. The clergy
The granting of indulgences (not by that do not reply to his letters (Ep. 18), they defer
name) to lapsed persons, by confessors and to the libelli, or use them against him (Ep. 27).
martyrs, which had been first questioned and In Ep. 17 he entreats the aid of the laity
then sharply criticised by Tertullian (ad Mart. against them. When the concurrence of the
I ;de Pudic. 22), grew very quickly under the African and Italian episcopate is obtained
influence of some of those clergy who had (Ep. 43, iii.), and that of Novatian and the
opposed Cyprian's election. The veneration Roman clergy and confessors (Epp. 30, 31),
for sufferers who seemed actually to be the assuming a stronger tone (Ep. 32) with his
saviours of Christianity was intense, and many own clergy, he requires them to circulate the
heads were turned by the adulatory language whole correspondence, which is done (Ep. 55.
CYPRIAN us CYPRIANUS 221

iv.), and excommunication is announced that Novatus ordained Felicissimus deacon


against any who should allow communion (see the MSS. reading Ep. 52, " satellitem
except on the agreed terms. suum diaconum constituit," which Hartel has
About Nov. 250, persecution relaxed (pos- unwarrantably departed from), nor is there
sibly owing to the Gothic advance in Thrace), any such appearance of presbyterian principles
and though it was still unsafe for Cyprian to in this party, as divines of anti-episcopal
return, he endeavoured to deal with the dis- churches, Neander, Rettberg, d'Aubigne,
tress of sufferers who had lost their all, and Keyser, have freely assumed. The party were
to recruit the ranks of the clergy and allay in episcopal communion, took part in the
the excitement among the lapsed, by a com- episcopal election at Carthage, presently
mission (vicarii) of three bishops, Caldonius, elected a new bishop for themselves, and pro-
Herculanus, Victor, and two presbyters, Numi- cured episcopal consecration for him. When
dicus and Rogatian (Epp. 41, 26). Novatus visited Rome, he threw himself into
Declaration of Parties. —The excitement on the election then proceeding, and, after op-
the question of the lapsed is evinced by two posing the candidate who was chosen, pro-
classes of stories then afloat as to judgments cured episcopal consecration for his nominee
following on unreconciled offences and on pre- there also. Felicissimus too must have been
sumptuous communion (de Lapsis, 24, 25, 26). a deacon already, or he could not have in-
Cyprian employed both to urge delay, but they volved himself and Novatus in the charge of
do not emanate from his party of moderation. defrauding the church {Epp. 52, i. 50, i.).
At Carthage the party of laxity became promi- (2) The Puritan Party. — ;

The strength of
nent ; at Rome, that of exclusiveness. the Puritans, on the other hand, was in Rome.
(i) The party of laxity was composed of A group of confessors there, of whom the
confessors, spoiled by flattery {de Laps. 20), presbyters Moyses and Maximus were the
fashionable lapsi, who declined all penance chief, united with Novatian and the clergy in
{Laps. 30), influential ones, who had forced approving Cyprian's proposals. The modifi-
certain clergy to receive them, but also some cation of discipline by martyrs' merits was
clergy who united against Cyprian's policy never countenanced here {Ep. 28, ii.) never-
;

with the five presbyters who had from the theless, Moyses, before his death (which prob-
first resisted him. Of these, three were un- ably happened on the last day of 250), had
doubtedly DoNATUS, Gordius, Fortunatus condemned the extreme tendencies of Nova-
(Maran. Vit. Cyp. § xvii. ; Rettberg, pp. tian towards the non-reconcilement of peni-
97-112). That the fourth was Gains of Didda, tents (see Valesius's correct interpretation of
or Augendus, is but a guess. The principal in Eus. vi. 43, and Routh, R. S. iii. p. 81).
position and ability was the presbyter Novatus While Cornelius at Rome and Cyprian were
(Pearson's Jovinus and Maximus, and Pame- moving towards greater leniency than their
lius's Repostus and Felix are impossible). That resolutions had embodied, Novatian, without
Cyprian's five original opponents still acted questioning the hope of salvation for the
against him is shewn by " olim secundum lapsed, was now for making their exclusion
vestra suffragia " {Ep. 43, v.), though in 43, ii. perpetual, and teaching that the purity of the
he seems only to conjecture their complicity church could not otherwise be maintained.
with Felicissimus, whom Novatus had asso- The earthly conditions of the invisible and
ciated with himself as deacon in managing a visible church had not yet been discussed as
district called Mons (possibly the Bozra itself) the Donatists compelled them to be, and Nova-
(Epp. 52, 59, 36). Cyprian complains of not tian's growing error, though in the present
having been consulted in this appointment, application it completely severed him from
which, owing to the then position of the Cyprian and the chutrch, was not in principle
deacons, gave the party control of consider- different from that which Cyprian (though
able funds. All the arrangements hitherto without producing a schism) held in relation
agreed on were disregarded by them, Cyprian's to Baptism. Early in a.d. 251 the Roman
missives unanswered, and his commission of confessors were liberated they lost whatever
;

relief treated as an invasion of the diaconal influence Moyses had exercised on them ;

office of Felicissimus, who announced, while they had been drawn towards Novatian, and
other lapsi were at once received into com- when Novatus, arriving from Carthage,
munion, that whoever held communications attached himself to this party, because, though
with or accepted aid from the commission its Puritanism was alien to his own practices
would be excluded from communion or relief at home, it was the only opposition existing
frorn the Mons {Ep. 43, ii. ; Ep. 41, where the in the capital which threatened to overthrow
conjecture in morte, or references to Monte in the Cyprianic side, they were at once organized
Numidia, or to the Montenses at Rome, who into a party to secure the election of a bp.
were Donatists, and were never (anciently) of Rome who would break with Cyprian.
confused with the Novatianists or called Mon- The moment for election was given by the
tanistae, are absurd ; though Hefele, Nova- absence of Decius and his leading officers on
tianischer Schisma, ap. Wetzer and Welte, K. the frontier or in Illyria on account of the base
Lexik. and Conciles, t. ii. p. 232, countenances alliance of Priscus with Cniva, and the revolt
these confusions). It is with the name of of Valens. The party of moderation, however,
Felicissimus that the lax party is generally prevailed and secured the election of Cornelius,
connected {Ep. 43, iii. v. vii.), and he, with a and consecrated him in spite of himself by 16
fellow-deacon Augendus, a renegade bishop bishops * (" vim " Ep. 55, vii.).
Repostus, and certain others, the five presby-
* I/ipsius has shewn conclusively that the conse-
ters not among them, was presently excom-
cration of Cornelius was about Mar. 5 (Chronol. d.
municated. There is no evidence, nor any rbmischen the usual statement that
Bischofe, p. 18) ;

contemporary instance, to warrant the belief it was in June introduces endless contradictions into
222 CYPRIANUS CYPMANUS
First Council. —
Cyprian returned to Car- bishops fresh from Rome, Stephanus and
thage after Easter (Mar. 23) from his 14 Pompeius, had brought evidence of the
months' absence (biennium), which seems to regularity of Cornelius's ordination (Ep. 55,
have been prolonged by a fear of the " faction" vii.) as conclusive as the commissioners could
(Ep. 43, i.) rekindling persecution (Ep. 55, v.) have obtained, and the council had expressed
by some demonstration. The bishops of the itself as formally satisfied (Ep. 45, i.) when
province met in April for the first council, four new delegates from Rome (Maximus, not
held in Carthage, for half a century [Agrip- the confessor Augendus, etc.) announced
;

PiNUs], but the discussion on the lapsed was the consecration of Novatian to the Roman
postponed by letters from Rome, which see. This surprise (for fuller details of
Cyprian laid before them, viz. Cornelius's an- which see Novatian) was prepared by the
nouncement of his election (Ep. 45, ii.) and a party of severity, who were disappointed
temperate protest against it from Novatian by the election of Cornelius, stimulated by
{45, iv.) (Maran, p. Ix. misinterprets this Evaristus, whom Cyprian regarded as the
against the sense of Baluze, whom he edits). author of the movement (Ep. 50), and directed
The protest was soon followed by a mass of in their action by Novatus, who, possibly with-
charges, which Cyprian declined to submit to out being a mere adventurer, nor on the other
the council. This was excellent policy, but hand at all deserving Neander's characteristic
at the same time a curious exercise of personal exculpations, had no doctrine of his own to
authority in that earliest type of returning maintain, but came to Rome simply to endeav-

freedom the church council. At the same our to promote a supposed independence by
time he made them dispatch two of their frustrating the arrangements made by the
number, Caldonius and Fortunatus, to Rome, bishops as to the reception or exclusion of the<
to report. Caldonius was instructed to pro- lapsed. At Carthage therefore he belonged to
cure attestations of the regularity of the the broad party, at Rome to the narrow.*
ordination of Cornelius from bishops who had It is a mistake to suppose that his change of
attended it [Ep. 44 and cf. 45, i.). Meantime, party was unnoted cf. Ep. 52, iii. (4), " dam-
;

communications with the Roman church were nare nunc audet sacrificantium manus," with
to be addressed only to the clergy and not to Ep. 43, iii., " nunc se ad perniciem lapsorum
Cornelius. (The statement of Lipsius, p. 204, verterunt," i.e. by indulgence. It is also a
on Ep. 45, v., is too strong.) He was also to mistake (though Lipsius falls into it, and it is
lay before the clergy and laity, so as to guard universal with the earlier writers) and intro-
them against clandestine influence, the whole duces confusion into the history to assume
correspondence about Felicissimus (Epp. 41, that Novatus made several voyages to and
43. 45. v.). The council, then reverting to its fro. If his arrival be fixed soon after Mar. 5,
programme, was obliged to dispatch first the A.D. 251, it will be found to solve the various
question of Felicissimus, since, if he were problems. Their embassy to Carthage, re-
justified in his reception of the lapsed, no jected by the council (" expulsi," Ep. 50, not
terms of communion need be discussed but
; from Africa, as Pearson), appealed to Cyprian
if the main issue went against him they could (Ep. 44). They were not prepared to find
not on such ex post facto ground deal with that he had moved towards leniency as much
him disciplinarily. His offence consisted not as Novatian to severity from their late common
in his theory, wliich might conceivably be standpoint and they are told plainly that
;

correct, but in his readmitting people whose their position must now be considered as ex-
cases had been by due notice reserved. Cyp- ternal to the church. Accepting this, they
rian, to his honour and like a good lawyer, proceed to construct a schismatic episcopal
was not present during the trial of his oppon- body with wide alliances. Somewhere close
ent, who was condemned. He does not em- to this point the treatise de Unitate, or the
ploy the first person in relating it [Ep. 45, v.), germ of it, was first delivered in the form of a
as he always does of councils which he at- speech, or a read pamphlet, to the council.
tended, and from Ep. 48 we must conclude We give an outline of it later. Messengers to
that he was at Hadrumetum at that very time."* Cornelius (Primitivus, Mettius, Nicephorus,
The programme of the council was again inter- an acolyte) then convey full accounts of the
rupted still more seriously. Two African procedure, and inform him of his general
recognition as bishop, f Simultaneously,
the common account, and has obliged even Pearson
to resort to unmanageable hypotheses of long re- * It may here clear some difficulties in Cyprian's
cesses in the first council of Carthage and of several letters which Maran and others have confuseid, if we
journeys of Novatus to Rome. observe that Stephen and Pompey left Rome before
* This absence of Cyprian from the trial of his Novatian's consecration. It is clear from the sen-
opponent solves difficulties otherwise insoluble. sation they produced that the Novatiiinist embassy
Pearson and Tillemont attribute to the council vari- brought the first news of it. The council could
ous adjournments, partly to dispose of the long " refute and repel " its charges, because, though they
period required by their false date for Cornelius's had not received (expectavimus) their own commis-
election, and partly to give room for the visit to sioner's report (as Maran, V. Cyp. Ixi., erroneously),
Hadnunetum. Frequenter ado (Ep. 59, xvi.) means they had been satisfied by Stejihen's. Hence super-
largely attended, not, as Pearson and Tillemont, as- venerunt, i. (i), means
" came on the top of our ex-
44
sembled anain and again. I,ipsius has ingeniously pectancy," not "cameafter theNovatianistembassy."
conjectured, to meet the second difficulty, that the The coimcil could not, as they did, have excommu-
council empowered Cyprian to recognize Cornelius nicated the embassy at once, if up till then they had
after their dissolution, if he were satisfied. But the only received Cornelius's letters, of which they were
council, before breaking up, were abundantly satis- seeking ratification.
fied, and directed him to be acknowledged (Ep. 45). t There is no reason to suppose with I,ipsius (p.
So that it is, out of the question that aftencards 204, n.) that any correspondence is lost, except the
Cyprian should have gone to Hadrumetiun and sus- S3rnodic epistle about Felicissimus, for Ep. 44 says
pended its correspondence with Cornelius. expressly that the details will be given vivd voce.
;

CYPMAKUS cypriaNus 223

appeals, which were ultimately successful, next success (Ep. 52 (2), ii.): Cyprian's
were addressed by Cyprian to the Roman letters to the Novatianist confessors are
confessors to detach themselves from the among the most beautiful and skilful in the
schism in which they found themselves in- collection and Augustine cites no less than
;

volved. The original work before the council, three times a passage from the letter on their
the restoration of the lapsed, had been facili- return as embodying the absolute scriptural
tated by the two episodes, which had cleared answer to puritan separations. It is the first
off the extreme parties on either side. They exposition of the parable of the Tares, and St.
now listened to Cyprian's treatise on the Paul's image of the Great House. Prevailed
lapsed ; but they inclined to a course even on by the arguments used to them, and
milder than he suggested, while they were less shocked by the consequences of their action,
disposed than he to give the " Martyres " any the whole party, with numerous adherents,
voice in the decisions.* Their encyclical returned to the Catholic side, and were publicly
is lost, but the particulars are extricable from and magnanimously received, like the leaders
his Letter to Antonian {Ep. 55), which, since of the same sect at Nicaea, and the Donatists
it treats only of the restoration of the libel- at Carthage, and the Arians at Alexandria,
latici, not of the lapsed, must be earlier than without forfeit of dignity (Epp. 49, 52, 53, 46,
the second council, a.d. 252, and from the 54, 51). To Cyprian this was more than an
verbal resemblance of Ep. 54 (3) to 55 (v.) occasion of Christian joy. It was the triumph
must be very near the event. We thence of his theory (Ep. 51 ad fin.). The date of

gather that they resolved (1) On an indi- this event may be accurately determined as
vidual examination of the libellatici (2) being after the Carthaginian council (since
;

Episcopal restoration of non-sacrificers after Cyprian does not mention this as sitting, in
penance (Ep. 55, v.) (3)
;
Of sacrificers if his letters on the confessors, and he read the
penitents at death (55, xiv.) ;(4) No restora- account of their recantation to the church, Ep.
tion of those who deferred penance till death 51, not to the bishops), but prior to the Roman
(55, xix.). A Roman synod was held in council, or else they would have been excom-
June or July f by 60 bishops of Italy, who municated by it, which they evidently were
accepted these decisions, and excommunicated not and since Cyprian says they recanted
;

Novatian. Cornelius announced the facts in on the departure of Novatus, it was after the
four (so Tillemont correctly) Greek (so Valois second embassy had left Rome.
correctly) letters to Antioch (Eus. vi. 43), Treatise on Unity. —
The principles of this
with two (non-extant) of Cyprian. Briefly treatise, read in the council, and sent to the
to sum up the constitutional results of this first Roman confessors (Ep. 54), so shape all Cyp-
council of Carthage : i. The views of the rian's policy, that it is best to notice it here.
primate are submitted to those of the council It indicates its date minutely by allusions to
he admits the change (Ep. 55, iii.). 2. The the severe party (Novatian's) (iii. ministros,
intercession and merits of the martyrs, as etc., viii. uno in loco, etc., ix. feritas, x. con-
affecting the conditions of restoration, are set fessor, xi. episcopi nomen, xiii. aemuli), and by
aside entirely. 3. On the other hand (as the absence of allusion to the lax party (Feli-
against Novatian), no offences are considered cissimus), whose schism must have been
to be beyond the regular power of the church noticed in such a paper if the question had not
to remit. 4 (against Felicissimus). No power been concluded. In c. v. its original form as
except that of the authentic organization can an address to bishops is traceable. The first
fix terms of communion. It will be at once appearance of Cyprian's characteristic error
seen that the free council of bishops had taken about baptism occurs in c. xi. Its first
position as a Christian institution, exercising problem is the existence of schism (as distinct
supreme governmental functions, and had from heresy), " altar against altar," with
laid clear lines as to where church authority freedom from corrupt doctrines and lives.
resided. They further ruled that there could The sole security is the ascertainment of the
be no subsequent canvassing of the claims seat of authority and bond of unity. This is
of a bishop once ordained. The resolutions indicated by Christ's commission given once
were issued in the name of the bishops only. to Peter alone, yet again to all the apostles in
The Reconciliation of the Novatianist Con- the same terms. The oneness of the commis-
fessors at Rome. — A second embassy of Nova- sion and the equality of the commissioned
tianists followed the report of the first, in were thus emphasized. The apostleship, con-
order to press Cyprian home — Primus, Diony- tinued for ever in the episcopate, is thus uni-
sius, Nicostratus, Evaristus, and above all, versal, yet one : each bishop's authority per-
NovATus ; to whose leaving Rome Cyprian fect and independent, yet not forming with
does not hesitate partly to ascribe his own the others a mere agglomerate, but being a full
tenure on a totality, like that of a shareholder
* ^P. 54, iii-
55 v. 3. To postpone the appearance in a joint-stock property. " Episcopatus
of the de Lapsis to Nov., as Pearson does, or to any
solidum pars
moment after the council was over, is to attribute to unus est cujus a singulis in
It is in the above definition, c. iv.,
Cyprian a publication quite out of date and recom- tenetur."
mendations already disposed of. Therefore, if
that the famous interpolation has been made,
" ultio," c. i. is to be pressed to
mean the death of which Roman authorities (Mgr. Freppel, late
Decius (which is not necessary, in spite of the consen- Professor at the Sorbonne, S. Cyprien et I'Egl.
sus for it), it only shews that oiurs is a second ed. Prof. Hurter, of Innspruck,
d'Afr. lect. 12;

t The old date, Oct., is due to the mistake as to 55. PP. Opuscula, V. i. p.
Comehus's election. Jerome caUs this synod " Rom- 72) even now feel
ana Itahca Africana," as if it were one with the it important to retain. The loss of it sug-
Carthagmian Synod (de Scr. Ecc. 66, I^abbe, i. pp. gested the endeavour to make up for it by
865-868), and from this phrase Baronius has imagined weaving together other texts from Cyprian to
three coimcils. prove that this one after all represented his
— ;

224 CYPRIANUS CYPRIANUS


doctrine — anattempt which would certainly tianists having attracted converts from
heathenism and now given up hope of Cyprian,
never have been dreamed of if this spurious
passage had not seemed to make him so strong consecrated their legate Maximus to be (anti-)
a support. Such special pleading is performed bishop of Carthage.* The lapsed of the lax
with fullest ability by P. Ballerini (a.d. 1756, party, not being penitents, were not admissible
de Vi ac Primatu Romm. Pontiff, xiii. §iii. ed. on the new conditions ;the party had in-
Westhoff, 1845). The MS. history is to be creased to a number reckoned scarcely smaller
found fully in Hartel's preface, p. ix. p. xliii. than the Catholics (Ep. 59, xxi. 17), but the
It was rejected by Baluze (p. xiii. p. 397, p. milder terms now offered would diminish
409, and Latini, Bib. S. p. 179 and praef.) and them. The leaders therefore needed a more
inserted by authority in the editions by Manu- positive basis (Ep. 59, xv. xvi. [14]), and being
tius and the Benedictines. The actual origin taunted as the only unepiscopal body among
of the interpolation is partly in marginal Christians (Ep. 43, v.), procured the adhesion
glosses (as Latini proved) and partly in an of Privatus, a deposed bishop (Ep. 59, xiii.),
Ep. of Pelagius, ii. (a.d. 854 Pelag. ii. Ep. 6
; and consecrated Fortunatus a second anti-
Labbe, vol. vi. p. 627 ed. Ven. 1729), who
;
bishop in Carthage f by the hands of five
produces as " terrible testimonies of the bishops. J This fact was immensely exagger-
Fathers" a passage of Augustine nowhere else ated (59, xiv. 11), and Felicissimus sailed to
found, as well as this one four centuries before Rome as legate of his new chief, hoping that
it made its way into a manuscript. Its in- a recognition might be procured for numbers
troduction of the primacy of Peter as the which would be useful against Novatianism.
centre of unity is a clumsy interruption of the They reported the unpopularity of Cyprian at
argument and an overthrowal of Cyprian's Carthage, and threatened to appeal, if rejected^
universal principle of the " copiosum corpus to the Roman laity (Ep. 59, ii. iii. xxv.).
Episcoporum " (Ep. 68, iii. 55, xx.) as the core
;
Cornelius was disconcerted. Cyprian's ob-
of the visible unity of the church. The rest of servations on this, which begin in a half sar-
the treatise is the development in beautiful castic tone (Ep. 59, ii.), rise to glowing indig-
language, and the illustration from nature and nation, as he narrates the overwhelming work
scripture, of his principle. Schism is a divine at this moment entailed on him by the ex-
test and prejudicial separation of unbelievers amination in presence of the plebes of the
in principle. Lastly, unity in the visible returning schismatics and libellatics. The
church must mirror the unity of God and the demand for strictness in readmission comes
faith, and separations are due, not so much to (as usual after times of trial) from the mass.§
individual teachings as to a radical selfishness The leniency of the bishop and council, the
commonly sanctioned in religious, no less than gross mistake of a rival episcopacy, and the
in secular, life. popular claim for discipline, rapidly broke up

The Working of the Legislation. The legis- the party (59, xxi.) and reduced its congrega-
lation had been brought out by the clergy tion to a handful.
naturally the austerer class ; the one which Clerical Appeals under the Same Regulations.
had most inducements not to fall. It was too — It is not safe to assert that the terms of re-
severe. The approach of the great plague admission for clerics were considered separ-
evoked edicts for sacrifice and roused super- ately at the second council, but immediately
stitions which renewed the popular feeling after it is accepted that lapsed bishops and
against Christians, and led to the magisterial clerks could never resume orders (Ep. 55, ix.).
and popular outbreak of a.d. 252, which is too
ful time, such as began with AemLian Ap. 253. See
formally called the Persecution of Gallus (Ep.
fuither Pearson's arguments, of which one is good,
59, viii.), and which supernatural presages, one inadeqviate.
not justified by the event, foreshewed as more * Not earlier. Ep. 52 ii. Novatus has not yet made
cruel than that of Decius (Epp. 57, vi. 58, i.).
; a bishop in Carthage. Ep. 59 xi. Maximus is spoken
Of the libellatics some rigorously tried to of as sent nuper (a.d. 251) consecrated nunc (the Ep.
follow, others openly defied the conciliar en- being subsequent to Id. Mai. a.d. 252). From Ep.
actments (Epp. 57; 65, iii.; 68, ii.). Many 55 X. we find they had bishops in many places before
Council II. The step, then, had been delayed in
palliations appeared on examination. A Carthage, and this must have been because they still
second council of 42 bishops at Carthage, held had hopes of Cyprian, which, though misplaced, seem
on May 15, 252 (Ep. 59, xiii.), determined to to me not unnatural.
readmit without exception or postponement t Dean Milman (Lat. Chr. vol. i. p. 48) apparently
all who had continued penitent. Their missed the fact that there were two anti-bishops, one
synodic letter (Ep. 57), by Cyprian's hand, is of each extreme ; and also fell into the error of
a complete answer to his former sterner making Fortunatus a Novatianist.
X These were Privatus of I,ambaese, condemned
strain. The motive cause is the necessity of by a council of 90 bishops, under Donatus, Cyprian's
strengthening by communion those who will predecessor Felix, a pseudo-bishop of Privatus's
;

shortly be called to suffer.* The Nova- making Repostus, a lapsed bishop Maximus and
; ;

Jovinus, Sacrificati, whom, from their having been


* Ep. 64. The synodic letter of the third council condemned by nine bishops, and then by the first
characterizes the ground for readmission accepted council, I conclude to have been bishops.
by the second council as necessitate cogente, and that § Socrates's (v. 19) statement that this was the
of the first as infinnitate urgente, and blames bp. occasion on which Poenitentiaries were first appointed
Therapius for having neglected both. Ep. 64, to hear private confession, seems counter to the whole
therefore, cannot, with Mr. Shepherd (Letter ii. p. lo, spirit of the time. Sozomen (vii. 6) represents the
following Lombert ap. Pearson, Ann. Cyp. p. 456), be Roman mode of penance much later, when the bishop
dated before Ep. 57, nor (as Maran) synchronize with is himself the fellow penitent and the absolver. This
it ; for they could not censure the neglect of a rule contradiction of his statement thft Poenitentiaries
they were in the act of making and why should only
; were an institution in the West as well as the East
42 bishops have issued letter 57, out of 66 who issued shews how little was known of the origin or date of
Ep. 64 ? Add to which that 64 is written in a peace- the office.

CYPRIANUS CYtRIANUS t2^


In Ep. 65 Cyprian rests this on the Levitical physical had preceded it (ad
disturbances
institution and on his own visions. In Ep. Dem. ii. i, vii. 5). The eruption and the
67, vi., however, he speaks of all bishops being brain affection which marked the plague of
agreed on this. In Ep. 72, iii., four years Athens are not recorded of this nor yet the ;

later, the principle extends to presbyters and pulmonary symptoms, which, perhaps, were
deacons who had taken part in a heresy or not developed in the African climate. The
schism. And at first sight it presents a other symptoms seem to be identical, and the
singularly contradictory appearance of laxity devastation far more awful, extensive, and
that only Novatianists and Donatists held enduring. It lasted 20 years reduced the ;

the indelibility of orders to be such that their population of Alexandria by half destroyed ;

recanting bishops resumed their functions the armies of Valerian before Sapor kept the ;

(Optatus, i. p. 27). There are three cases: Goths off the Thracian border, and for some
(i) Therapius, bp. of Bulla, admits Victor, a time killed 5,000 persons daily in Rome
lapsed presbyter, without due penance. (Eutrop. ix. v.; Hist. Aug. Galli, v. p. 177;
Fidus, bp., reports this to the third council of Dionys. ap. Eus. vii. 22 Greg. Nys. Vit.
;

67 bishops (a.d. 253), considering that Victor Greg. Thaum. § 12). efforts of the Em-
The
should be re-excommunicated. The council perors Gallus and Valerian in burying the
decline to rescind the boon of " God's priest," dead were appreciated, otherwise their efforts
but censure Therapius, apparently in his place were confined to supplications to Saturn and
(Ep. 64 objurgare et instruxisse) for neglect-
, Apollo. (See three types of coins of Gallus in
ing the terms of the second council without British Museum, and see Cohen, Medailles
any consultation of the laity. The same Imper. vol. iv. p. 270 Bandusi, vol. i. p. 58.)
;

letter [ad Fidum, 64) contains an important Horrible scenes of desertion and spoliation
decision as to age of baptism. [Fidus.] (2) ensued in Carthage as in Athens (Pontii Vit.
Fortunatus, bp. of Assurae, lapsed, and in his Cyp. and Cyp. ad Dem. 10 [8], 11 [9]), when
place was elected Epictetus ; but the lapsed universal physical terror or audacity over-
party (Ep. 65, v. iii.) on their return claimed powered all other sentiments. As in Neo-
for him the function and emoluments. The Caesarea and Alexandria so in Carthage, the
ground of order would have been sufficient ;
Christian clergy stood out as the first cham-
but Cyprian, with his characteristic error, pions of life, health, and feeling. Cyprian
urges the vitiation of any church function dis- addressed his community in a speech, which
charged by an unworthy minister, and recom- it was wished could have been delivered to
mends individual canvassing, if necessary, to the city from the rostrum, on the duty and
unite the flock under Epictetus. (3) The divineness of prayer and help to the perse-
most important case is that of Basilides and cutors (Respondere Natalibus was his watch-
Martial, in a.d. 254, when the Spanish churches word), and then proposed and carried a
of Leon, Astorga, and Merida appeal to Cyp- scheme for the systematic care of the city.
rian against the negligent decision of Steph- Filled with his motives and under his influence
anus, now bp. of Rome, in favour of the rich and poor undertook the parts he assigned,
restoration of their lapsed bishops. The raised a large fund, formed a nursing staff
letter of the Carthaginian council of 37 bishops, and burial staff, and allowed no religious dis-
A.D. 254 (Ep. 67), penned by Cyprian, declares tinction in their ministrations. But their
the verdict of the bp. of Rome mistaken and abstinence from religious processions and
to be disregarded. This letter also insists sacrifices marked the Christians as enemies of
on the duty of a laity to withdraw from com- God and man, and the " Overseer of the Chris-
munion with a " sacrilegious " or " sinful " tians " was demanded by name for a contest
bishop, and marks the universal sense that with a lion (Epp. 59, viii. 66, 44). The ;

there resided in a congregation no power to terrible work lasted on till his exile five years
make valid the sacramental acts of a nominee later, as we must conclude from Pontius's
who lacked the note of true orders (Ep. 67, juxtaposition of the events, with his remark
iii.
; cf. Routh, vol. iii. p. 152). that exile was the reward for " withdrawing
Practical Organizations and Christian Culture. from human sight a horror like hell."
— (a) Captivity.— During the session of the (c) Ad Dernetrianum. —
Their chief foe was
council an extensive raid was executed by the an aged magistrate (sub ipso exitu Dem. 25
Berbers, who, severely ruled as they were [22]), not the pro-consul (Pearson), but per-
without any attempt to civilize them, were laaps one of the five primores, formerly an
beginning that steady advance on Numidia inquirer into the truth of Christianity, in
which in a few years replaced the whole range Cyprian's own friendship (i.), now himself an
of Ferratus in their possession. In 252 their inventor of accusations (c. 2) and tortures,
front line reached from Thubunae on the salt- xii. (10). The pamphlet in which Cyprian
marsh to the terebinth forests of Tucca, and assails him is much wider in its aim than Ter-
they deported large numbers of the Christians tullian's ad Scapulam both have the remon-
;

of no less than eight sees. Several inscriptions strance against the suppression of the one
relate to this invasion (see Revue Afric. vols. natural worship, the appeal to the demeanour
iv. vii. viii.). About £800 were subscribed of the now prevalent sect (pars paene major
by the 60 bishops and Carthaginian com- cujusque civitatis), to the effects of exorcism,
munity (Ep. 62), and sent to them. and the influence through suffering of the

(b) Plague. But the great field on which Christians. But while Tertullian for once re-
the expanding powers of humanity were frains from denunciation, and is almost gentle
gathered up and animated by the church was in his examples of warning, Cyprian's object is
opened by the great plague which reached wider he answers the question, " Whence
;

Carthage in a.d. 252, having travelled two all this political and this physical misery ? "
years from Ethiopia through Egypt. Great The heathen answer attributed it to the divine
15
;

226 CYPRIANUS CYPRIANUS


displeasure at toleration. Cyprian accepts 55, xviii. good works acting on sins
[14]) of
also a certain theory of mundane decrepitude, done after baptism, as baptism acts to remit
but bases his real reply on the general disso- former sin. Neander (Ch. Hist. vol. i. p. 391,
lution of the bonds of society an important
;
Bohn) remarks that while this same thought
passage, perhaps the very earliest on slavery appears in Tertullian {de Poenit.), yet no one
(viii. [6]), marks the exact stage reached by person can be regarded as the author of it.
the Christian consciousness on this subject. It is a natural and popular materialistic germ
So also the theory of Resentment is exhibited in of the doctrines of Rome on penance.
a certain stage of purification, though some of (/) The Exhortation to Confessorship is a
the language would be intolerable now. The practical manual of Scripture passages, con-
eternal conservation of beings for eternal nected by brief remarks, under 13 heads of
suffering is laid down (xxiv. 21). The most reflection compiled at the request of a lay-
;

original part of the essay is the development man, Fortunatus. Its existence sufficiently
for the first time of the theory of Probation indicates the extent of suffering which a per-
(already struck out in his slightly earlier secution developed. A more sober tone as to
epistle 58 to Thibaris) as grouping the pheno- the perfections of the martyrs is perceptible.
mena of humanity. Jerome hastily (Ep. The introduction of the seven Maccabees not
83 ad Magn. Lact. Inst. 5, 4) criticizes
;
only as examples, but as a type of unity {ad
Cyprian for advancing scriptural proofs to a Fort, xi.), dates this as later than de Unitate,
heathen. But (i) Demetrian already knew where every other possible type is accumulated
something of Christianity; (2) Cyprian does but not this one. The teaching on probation
not quote authors' names, as to one familiar ;
also marks the stage of his thoughts. He
(3) he quotes nothing but plainly fulfilled pre- computes the world to be near 6,000 years
dictions. All which (as well as the classical old {ad Fort. ii. cf. Tert. de V. V. i.).

;

tone and quotations) fits the case exactly, and {g) On the Lord's Prayer. To promote intel-
answers Rettberg's incompetent conjecture ligent devotion was his next aim. This treat-
that Demetrian is a fancy figure. ise is written with precision and with visible
{d) On the Mortality. —
This treatise, or delight. The time is clearly shewn by his
epistle as Augustine quotes it no
calls it (he deductions on unity (xxiv. cf. de Unit. xiv. ;

lessthan six times), presents to the Christians [12]) on the danger of withholding commu-
;

the consolatory primitive view of the topics nion from penitents {de Or. xviii.), and on the
set threateningly before Demetrian. It is confessor's temptations to arrogance (xxiv.).
meant to elevate their view of both the per- Cyprian follows Tertullian freely, not tran-
secution and the plague, from which some scribing as before ; adopts the African " ne nos
expected providential exemptions, while others patiaris induci " without remark (cf. Aug. de
hated it only as an interference with martyr- Dono Persev. vi. 12), and " fiat in caelo " {id.
dom he explains his theory of probation and
;
iii. 6) ; illustrates more fully from Scripture,
of predictions as evidencing a divine plan. and uses a different version. His silence prob-
He cannot reject, but he gives a Christian ably evinces Tertullian's success in remon-
turn to the general belief in the world's decay ;
strating against superstitious observances in
urges organizations for relief of suffering praying (Tert. Deor. xi. xvi.), and he does not,
treats moral causes in society as affecting like his " master," hail the " confusion of
general and even physical phenomena. In nations " as a mark of the kingdom but in ;

c. xxvi. occurs what seems more than a coin- his expansion of the symbolism of praying
cidence with phrases in the Te Deum. In thrice a day we have the earliest use of Trinitas
c. XX. he condemns the use of black for in Latin as a name of Deity (in Tert. adv.
mourners. Prax. 3, it is not exactly this). In a.d. 427
(e) —
On Work and Alms. A pastoral, which Augustine {Ep. ccxv.) used the treatise suc-
may indeed be connected with the incidents of cessfully with the monks of Adrumetum to
Ep. 62, but more probably has a wider refer- prove the Pelagian errors contrary to the
ence to the demands made by the plague and Cyprianic doctrine. He quotes this short
coincident troubles on the exertions and treatise of " victoriosissimns Cyprianiis " else-
liberality of the Christians. Among circum- where 13 times to the same eftect. Yet not
stances known to us directly it would be more one term occurs in it which became technical
natural to link it to the great speech which in that controversy — a fact which would alone
Pontius mentions as having been delivered at evince its early date. Mr. Shepherd, however
that time to the community. Here again we (Fourth Letter to Dr. Maitland, 1853), has
find Cyprian working out the new faith into undertaken to prove that its writer was ac-
a life-system philosophically (as in a kind of
;
quainted with the work of Chromatins {d. a.d.
Tusculan) adjusting moral feeling and practice 406) and is more " sacramental " than that
to the newly gained higher facts about God author, Gregory Nyssen, or Chrysostom, and
and Man. See cc. ix. x. xi. practically develop- than Augustine's doubt as to the application of
ing that " loss is gain," and " gain is loss," to the " daily bread " allows he observes that ;

those who are within the care of Christ, xvi. Venantius (6th cent.) does not use it, though
Christianity becomes a social element which up- his predecessor, Hilary, refers the readers of
lifts the poor their claims take precedence of
; his commentary to it in preference to com-
family claims; the possession of a family only menting himself having thus satisfied him-
increases the obligation to Christ's poor. — In
;

self of the lateness of the Cyprianic treatise,


xxii. is a bold passage, almost Goethesque, Mr. Shepherd therefore asperses the genuine-
in which Satan apostrophizes Christ on the ness of the great August inian works which
superior liberality of his own school. — The cite it. A critical comparison with Chro-
doctrine of the first part i-vii. develops the matins would require a minuteness and
unfortunate conception (roundly stated in Ep. space here inadmissible, but the result of such
CYPRlANUS CYPMANUS 227
investigation leaves no doubt that Cyprian is SO anti-puritan a mould, except for his over-
the middle term between TertuUian and Chro- indulgence to Marcion, the Novatianist bp.
matius. Briefly, Chromatins knows no argu- of Aries {Ep. 68) but his was rather a policy
;

ment or illustration of TertuUian's which of general resistance to the spiritual power


Cyprian has not employed almost every one compacted by Cyprian and Cornelius a policy
; ;

of these has in Chromatins (though a most of the widest comprehension on the one basis of
condensed prosaic writer) some additional submissiveness to his see. The cases of Basil-
Cyprianic touch or colour adhering to it. ides and Martial have been mentioned. Cyp-
Observe too Chromatius's insertion of the rian's tone to him is one of both compassion
negative, in his qui necdiim crediderunt (§ iv.), and dictation (Ep. 68), and from his letter to
in mistaken elucidation of Cyprian's obscure Florentius Pupienus (66) it is plain that
in Hits credentibus (§ xvii.) precisely as later others besides Stephen felt, rightly or wrongly,
MSS. and editors have altered it. As to the more than aversion to the immense influence
Eucharistic language about daily bread, it is of Cyprian. And, although the whole church
admittedly not more strong than in other has decided that Stephen was right in the
Cyprianic treatises, nor visibly stronger than great controversy which arose, it was long
Chromatins. The Antiochene Fathers of course before his character recovered the shock of his
are not Eucharistic in this clause, because they impetuous collision with Cyprian, and grew
followed Origen's interpretation of iiriovaio's. capable of his fictitious crown of martyrdom.
Augustine will not strictly limit the petition The next group of documents belongs to a.d.
to the Eucharist (though for singular reasons, 255 and 256, and is occupied with the contro-
Serm. 56, 57, 58), but his more analytical, yet versy on rebaptism (Epp. 69-75, Sentt. Epp.
more mystical treatment of it is distinctly in Ixxxvii.). For though Cyprian objects to that
a later mood than the simply moral handling term (Ep. 73, i.), catholic doctrine insists on
of Cyprian. That Venantius does not men- the assertion it involves. Notwithstanding
tion Cyprian in his unfinished treatise surely the council of Agrippinus, and the reception of
demands no explanation. His aim is more thousands of heretics by rebaptism in the
theological and his language very compressed. African church (Ep. 73, iii.), numbers had been
But tinges of Cyprian are perceptible in the readmitted without it (Ep. 73, xxiii. Aug. ;

passages on Sonship perseverance


;
reigning says the practice had fallen off).
;
On the other
with Christ resistance to God's will, and our- hand, though Stephen appeals to the constant
;

selves being made heavenly to do it but we tradition of his church against rebaptizing,
;

may add that Ambrose's omission to comment this is simply to ignore the action of Callistus
on vv. 1-5 of c. xi. is inexplicable, except for (Hippolytus, p. 291, a passage which is against
the existence of some standard treatise, such the idea of that author's Novatianism, but
as is mentioned by Hilary (Mt. V.) " De which Hefele monstrously wants to apply to
:

orationis sacramento necessitate nos com- Agrippinus [Hist, des Conciles, vol. i. p. 87,
mentandi Cyprianus liberavit." Paris]). An allusion to Stephen (Ep. 69, x.)

Interval. Cornelius's exile, with others, to seems to imply that Stephen stirred the ques-
Civita Vecchia, his decease in June 253, as a tion first. Rettberg considers, after Maran,
martyr, in the then sense of the word, the short that his Oriental dispute had already occurred
episcopate of Lucius, his exile, speedv return, (p. 170). So Hefele. But this is not neces-
and death, not later than Mar. 5, a.d. 254 (Cyp. sary. Cyprian (de Un. xi.) early committed
Epp. 60, 61, 67, 68), find place in Cyprian's himself to language as strong as he ever used
correspondence,* not without some undue again. The original inquiry is whether the
exaggerations, as when he compares the re- non-heretical Novatianists, baptized as such,
appearance of Lucius to that of John Baptist, can be received to catholic communion. It
as heralding the advent. Not later than this extended itself (73, iv.), until the cases of
we place the epistle (63) to bp. Caecilius, re- Marcionites and even Ophites were debated ;
proving the omission of wine in the chalice, Stephen would include, and Cyprian exclude,
and distinctly indicating the symbolical im- all. At first the difficulty was only " Is not
portance of a mixed cup the necessitv of a the exclusive African practice itself a Nova-
;


congregation to constitute a sacrament'; the tianist mark being otherwise used only in
irregularity of evening communion. To that sect ? " Our briefest method will be
Sept. 253, and its council of 66 bishops, be- first to enumerate the documents, and then to
longs the condemnation of the postponing for classify their often repeated arguments.
even a few days, on ritual grounds, the admin- (i) Magnus, a layman, makes the first ap-
istration of the other sacrament to infants. plication, and is replied to by Cyprian with
To It belongs the affair of Therapius, as above. affectionate respect (Ep. 69). (2) The bishops
Changed Relations with Rome, and Cyprian's of Numidia, who, though without formal vote,
Error 0/ Rebaptism.
on April 23

In a.d. 254 Easter was had adopted the practice, apply next the ;

Stephanus was made bp. of reply is from 33 bishops of Africa, with the
;

Rome May 12 the Carthaginian council presbyters of Carthage (Ep. 71). This is
;

met towards autumn (September?). It had Cyprian's 5//; Council and ist on Baptism.
seemed to Cyprian a token of divine displeas- Ep. 70 is their conciliar declaration of the
ure with the Novatianists that they did not necessity of (re)baptism. (3) A Mauritaniai}
suffer with the church and their prosperity
;
bishop, Quintus, is answered in Ep. 71,
might have seemed to form Stephen's policy in enclosing Ep. 70, now widely circulated (71,
* On the death of Cornelius and iv.), breathing an injured tone as towards
his sepulture, see
Mommsen, Chronog. vom Jahre 354, p. 631 Stephen, and indicating that the council had
de •

Kossi, Roma Sou. vol. ii. not been unanimous (Ep. 71, i., plurimi
pp. 66-68 and on the true
;
. . .
date of his death, as distinct from nescic qua praesumptione quidam).
his festival, I,ip- (4)
sius, Chron. d. Pap. p.
192.
' ^ The de Bono Patientiae was published about

228 CYPRIANUS CYPMANUS


this time, to be, without one word upon the mended forbearance to Stephen, and to the
subject matter of the controversy, a calming eminent Roman presbyters Dionysius and
voice in the rising storm. The de Zelo ei Philemon.* (8) Pompey, bp. of Sabrata on
Livore is generally (and probably) thought to the Syrtis, was the next inquirer, asking for
be a very little later in date, and similar in Stephen's reply {Ep. 74). Cyprian sends it
purpose. It is equally reticent on passing with the antidote, a fine letter, though not
events, unless (in vi. 5) there may be an allu- moderate, closing with an amendment on the
sion to Novatian. There are a few close verbal canon of Stephen. Pompey was convinced if
resemblances between the two treatises, es- he had wavered, and his proxy at the council
pecially in de Pat. xix. (11) and de Zelo, iv. was presented by his neighbour the bp. of
and v. (5) Next year, a.d. 256, the dth Oea. (9) The 7th council of Carthage, or
Council under Cyprian and 2nd on Baptism, 3rd on baptism, held Sept. i, a.d. 256. Eighty-
composed of 71 bishops, Numidian and Afri- seven bishops of all the three provinces, with
can,* unanimously reaffirm the opinion in an presbyters and deacons, met in the presence of
UQConciliatory synodical epistle to Stephen, a vast laity, t The council opened with the
conscious of the offence they will give, and reading of the Jubaian correspondence, and
enclosing Epp. 70 and 71. This epistle is the letter to Stephen {Sent. 8), and with a brief
mentioned by Jerome, adv. Lucif. But speech from Cyprian, large and pacific (Aug.
Augustine (Resp. ad Epp. 15) seems not to R. Epp.). Each bishop then by seniority
have seen it, which is strange. (6) Jubaian, delivered his opinion, of which we have a
a bp. of Mauritania, forwards to Cyprian a verbal report : from some a good argument,
copy of a paper there circulating, with some from some a text, an antithesis, an analogy,
authority, which recognizes even Marcion's or a fancy : here a rhetorical sentence, there
baptism [Ep. 73, iv.). It may have been a solecism or an unfinished clause ; a simple
issued by one of those native bishops who restatement, a personality, a fanaticism two
;

dissented (Sentt. Epp. 59, 38, and cf. Aug. of the juniors vote with the majority on the
Resp. ad Epp. 52, con. Donat. vii. 16, 6). Rett- ground of inexperience. But on the whole
berg agrees with " Constant. Ep. Ponttf. p. we must admire the temper and the ability of
226," that it was Stephen's letter to the East. so large a number of speakers. The council
Cyprian sent Jubaian a reply so elaborate that, had a great moral effect. It kept Roman
at the final council, he read it aloud as his own influence at bay for a long time. Jerome is
best exposition of his views, with Jubaian's mistaken in asserting, in his youthful contra
convinced answer. Cyprian's letter was Luciferianos, that these Fathers recanted. The
accompanied with all the documents sent to custom was not specifically repealed till the
Stephen, and a copy of his Patience. (7) A synod of Aries, nor for Asia Minor till the first
deputation of bishops waited on Stephen but of Constantinople. But, from peculiar cir-
were not received {Ep. 75, xxv.) ; the letter cumstances, it was specially accepted in the
which they bore was answered (74, i.) in terms East, and is the basis now of the rebaptism by
appreciative of the greatness of the question the Jacobites, not only of heretics and Nestor-
(75, xvii.) but not arguing it, charitable to the ians, but of orthodox Christians. J Before
separatists, affirming the tradition (75, v. 73, nium so late as a.d. 255 are smely quite insufficient.
;

xiii.), resting on the authority of the see (75, Eusebius (vii. 3) says Cyprian was irpwro? twi/ tote to
xvii.), and styling Cyprian " a pseudo-Christ, hold lebaptism, which is a most accurate expression.
a pseudo-apostle and treacherous worker." It He has already said that it had been held in very
would be unfair not to recognize anxiety under populous churches, and has told us of the old council
of Agrippinus whidi declared it. Asia had quietly
the word " treacherous," while Fabian of continued, Africa had mostly
dropped the practice,
Antioch, by dallying with Novatianism, was and Cyprian was the first tioi' t6t<; to revive it. Ivip-
complicating Stephen's position ; and Cyp- sius is actually driven by his own special pleading to
rian's own language as to " favourers of say there were lico synods of Iconiura " which must
Antichrist " (69, x.) had exposed him to re- not be confounded," one named by Firmilian, and one
taliation. —
Stephen had circulated in the East by Dionysius about the baptism of heretics at —

the same place at a very considerable interval
a paper which awakened " lites et dissensiones both making exactly the
same declaration.
per ecclesias totius mundi " (75, xxiv.), declar- • Jerome {Script. Ecc.) says Dionysius took the
ing he would hold no communion with bishops strict view. He himself seems (JJus. vii. 9) to say
who used second baptism [Ep. 75, xxiv. 74, the opposite, and cf. vii. 7.
;

viii. ; Dionys. Al. ap. Eus. vii. 5).t The t I believe this to be a simple and sufficient
natural reply of the metropolitan of Cappa- account of the circumstances of the correspondence,
" and Mosheim's and Rettberg's little amusement of
docia was Thou hast excommunicated thy- inventing lost documents is unnecessary. The letter
self." The general history of rebaptism of Stephanus shewn to Pompeius is the same which
must be read elsewhere, but it was held in Firmilian saw. The legation of course presented tlie
Cappadocia, Pamphylia, and other regions of synodal letter, which was meant to be tinal accord- :

Asia Minor as a practice received from " Christ ingly Cyprian (in Sentt. Ep.) speaks of the question
and from the apostle " (75, xix.), and it had as resting henceforth with individual bishops.
X Of the seventh comicil Mi. Shepherd says,
been confirmed by the councils of Synnada and " Wonderful to say, it has a date." So has the
Iconium. { Dionysius the Great recom- second {Ep. 59, xlii.). Of another event he remarks,
" It would have been far more natural to have said
A.D. 312. The relations of Numidia with Carth- a.d. 180, or some such date." It would have been
age seem unsettled (Hefcle, ConciUs, vol. i. p. 170). an excessively interesting use of the Christian era,
t H. Valois is right, I believe, in thinking this a and Mr. Shepherd has doubtless noted the careful
threat. Routh thinks it was actual excomnnmica- dates of other documents, Tertullian's historical
tion, and l,ipsius that he excommunicated Cypr an. allusions, Augustine's letters. The paucity of dates
Several bishops of the seventh coxnicil were very is, however, singular. It may have some connexion
early in the Roman calendar for iv. Id. Sep. with the African hostility, even to civil usages de-
J I,ipsius's reasons (pp. 219, 220) for dating Ico- pendent on heathenism. The Donatists at Carthage,
;

CYPRIANUS CYPRIANUS 229

the winter of 256* Cyprian's messengers to involved * {Ep. 72, i.), and if external baptism
Firmilian returned with (10) his reply, the istrue, the church has many centres not one
;

most enthusiastic letter of the series. We foundation rock, but several (75, xvii.). The
have it in Cyprian's translation from the separatist teacher surrenders (70, ii.) the ani-
Greek. t It has points of great interest mating, unifying Spirit, and cannot through
compares the bp. of Rome to Judas shews ; his personal earnestness convey that Spirit to
the antiquity of rebaptism in Asia touches ; followers by baptizing them t (Ep. 69). (d)
on their annual synods the fixed and extem- ; The imposition of hands on the readmitted
pore portions of the liturgy the quasi-supre- ; separatist expresses that he has not, but needs
macy of Jerusalem the unity under wide
; to receive, the Holy Ghost Stephen's party ;

divisions. For arguments to the point it relies use this rite, and quote the apostles at Samaria
on Cyprian's letters. as an example. But without that Spirit how
We will now briefly classify Cyprian's argu- could the separatist consecrate even the water
ments and the answers to them, avoiding the or the unction of confirmation ? {Ep. 70, i. ;

making him responsible for his partisans, cf. Sentt. Epp. 18 on the significance of this
;

whose judgment in council (vii.) differs much " royal " oil, see I?unsen and on the Nova- ;

from his. Firmilian, on the other hand, tianist disuse of it, Routh. vol. iii. pp. 69, 70).
summarizes sensibly. Cyprian then urges for Above all, how give the New Birth which, as
rebaptism (A), Objective grounds. [a) The the essence of the sacrament, is essentially
unity of the church, viz. that in the critical the Spirit's act [Ep. 74, v. vi. etc.) ? (e)
point of " church and non-church," schism Baptism in the absence of the Spirit is a J udaic,
does not differ from heresy {69, iii.) the : a carnal rite : a defilement ; more than a de-
representation of sacred acts outside not ceiving semblance, a material pollution [Ep.
equivalent to sacred acts within " one Lord, : 75, xiii. 72, i.
; 73, xxi.
; 69, xvi. cf. Seda- ; ;

one faith," there may be, but not " one tus, Sentt. Epp. 18 Victor Gordub. Sent.,
;

baptism," for this implies " one church," whom Augustine criticizes as going to lengths
which the schismatic renounces, (b) Unity of beyond Cyprian still the frightful expression
;

Belief. In its African form the creed ran, of de Unit. xi. involves all this). The pre-
" Dost thou believe the remission of sins and "
tender can " neither justify nor sanctify
life everlasting through holy church ? " and was (69, X.), who but
the holy can hallow (69, ii.) ?
accordingly null at the moment of baptism who but the living give life (71, i.) ? (/) Christ
away from the church, (c) Baptism is a not present to make up for the unworthiness of
function of holy orders on account of its remis- the minister. For if so His Spirit could not be
sory virtue in respect of sin (not Tertullian's absent (75, xii.), and that He is absent is ad-
doctrine {de Bap. xvii.]), and holy orders have mitted by the necessity for imposition of
no being outside the church (73, vii.), so that hands (id. xiii.).
the whole question of episcopal authority as (B) Subjective Grounds. (a) Faith of re-
the bond of unity and divine organization is cipient insufficient (Epp. 73, 75, ix.) to be :

A.D. 411, treat the fact that the Acts of the council effective must be true but is deficient in a
;

of Cirta, a.d. 305, commence with the consular date cardinal point, viz. the remission of sins by the
as an evidence against their genuineness. The Cath- church even if not false and, as often, blas-
;

olics reply, that though the Donatists avoid dates, phemous (73, iv. V 74). (6) Not secured by the
;
the Catholics use them. But it may be that the formula. In the Roman church there was
Donatists preserve the old puritanic tradition. Cf.
still such absence of rigidity that it was argued
Aug. Brev. Coll. c. Don. p. 569, 3ii. diei, cap. xv. § 26,
27. (Athanasius's objection to the date in the creed that without the Trinal form baptism into
of Sirmio is of another colour.) For an account of Christ's name sufficed {Ep. 74, v.). Cyprian
the Romanist assaults on it, see Rettberg, pp. 189, however points to the clear words of institu-
190. Augustine accepted it, when some wished to tion, and appeals to common reason to decide
make it of Donatist origin, on the ground of its con- whether one is truly baptized into the Son
taining so much against Donatism.
* Stephen died, and Cyprian was exiled before the who denies His Humanity {Ep. 73, v.), J or
winter of 257. treats the God of the O. t. as evil (74, iii.) :

t It is impossible not to recognize Cyprian's style even if the genuine formula be used, still the
in it equally impossible not to see the Gk. [A] in
; rite is no question of words the absent Christ ;

some of its compound phrases and coupled epithets and Spirit are not bound by them as a spell.
(e.g. i. magnam voluntatis caritatem in unum con-
venire
(c) Incapable of definition. It is not the
iii. velociter currentes, iv. quoniam sermo
church's part to graduate departures from the
;

. . distribuatur, etc.).
. [B] In the literal (sometimes
awkward) rendering of words iv. seniores et prae- :
faith. Even death in behalf of a heresy can-
positi _{= presbyteri et epicopi) for wp^trfivr^poi xal not restore to the church. If what is univer-
irpo£(7TU)Te! vii. praesident
; majores natu, where sally accepted as ipso facto baptism (in blood)
Cyprian could not have used presbyteri, and yet age is unavailing, how can ordinary extraneous
is not to the point fratribus tam longe positis
(fi-aKpav Kcifi6i'ois)
;
baptism be more {Ep. 73, xxi. de Unit. xiv. ;

J
V. inexcusabilem vi. eos qui
Romae sunt aequaliter quae vii. possident potes-
;
;

(12) xix. or Dotn. xxiv.) ?


;
;

tatem x. nee vexari in aliquo quamvis ad imagin-


;
(C) The historical argument is handled by
;
«n veritatis tamen xxiii. volentibus vivere xii.
; ;
Cyprian in the most masterly way. (a) Usage
Nos etiam illos quos hi qui. [C] Instances where the is not worth considering as more than an
Gk. not thoroughly mastered
is
cannot be matched
viii. nisi si his ;
apology for ignorance ;
episcopis quibus nunc minor fuit Paulus (? t<'oi' ./Ci/)
;
xii. ut per eos qui cum ipsi, etc. cum unmeaning— ; This view becomes " Christus baptizandi potes-
*
observe in ix. patrias of local persecutions in Asia tatem episcopis dedit " in tlie mouth of one of the
Mtnor. The remarkable translation of Eph. bishops {Sentt. Ep. 17).
4, 3, in
XXIV. is in the same words as in three other places of " Qui non habet quomodo dat ? " became a
t
Cyprian, and differs from every other known render- catchword of the Donatists. The reply of the Cath-
ing even the African Nemesianus in this council
;
olics was " Deum esse datorem " (Optat. p. 103).
uses curantes instead of satisagentes.
X The basis of this is Tert. de Bapt. xv.
230 CYPRIAN US CYPRIANUS
against reason (71, iii.
73) not universal tentiousness and uncharitableness,* was great.
; (6) is
on side of Stephen {Ep. 71) (c) cannot be
;
It was deserved also, for Rome represented
inferred from the non-baptism of restored freedom, comprehensiveness, and safe latitude.
perverts their case differs from that of She decided upon one grand principle, the
:

heathens, who had (to begin with) been made same on which Jerome afterwards decided the
heretics, not Christians, (d) The practice of analogous question of reordination {adv.
heretical bodies, which had always recognized Lucif.). Cyprian's principle was the same
any previous baptism, was no example to the which blinded Tertullian (de Bapt. xv.) which ;

church (74, iv.) nor could the Novatianist was extended by the Donatists to make moral
;

practice of rebaptism be a warning against it defects in the minister debar grace t which ;

(73, ii.) ;it was either accidental coincidence led Knox and Calvin to deny baptism to the
or imitation [simiarum more), and, if the latter, infant children of " papists," and the Genevan
it was evidence, [e] Casuistic difficulties upon divines to allow it, on the hope that " the
the necessity of " regeneration within the grace which had adopted " the great-grand-
"
church as to the position of unbaptized mar- fathers might not yet be so " wholly extinct
tyrs (73, xxii.), heretics hitherto readmitted that the infants should have lost their right
and deceased (xxiv.), cases of rebaptism where to the common seal " (Hooker, iii. i, 12).
baptism had been \^alid, baptism by a de- Augustine (Resp. ad Episcopos) developed the
moniac, are met by Cyprian with a breadth of categorical answer to each separate argument
which St. Augustine (contra Crescon. ii. 41) of Cyprian and his bishops, but the true solu-
says, in the midst of his refutation, " such tion was applied at once by Stephen. The
simplicity is enough for me." grace of baptism is of Christ, not of the human
(D) Biblical Arguments. —
The familiar ones baptizer. J He who baptizes does not give- "
need no more than enumeration the one being or add force " to the sacrament.
: Cyp-
loaf ; one cup the ark
; the schismatic (not rian's language about " justifying and sanc-
;

heretical) gainsaying of Korah the apostles' tifying " may well have shocked the church of
;

baptism of men who had already received the Rome, and makes Stephen's anger partly in-
Spirit, a fortiori needed for those who con- telligible. The child or heathen who learns
fessedly had not. We may admire the in- Christ through the teaching of the heretic
genuity with which he treats such passages as cannot be charged with " defect or disorder,"
Acts ii. 38, in Ep. y^, xvii., or Phil. i. 18, in in the reception of a sacrament, to which he
Ep. 74, 75, 73, xiv. but about many Cyprian comes with purest faith, and which it is the
;

might fairly be addressed in the words which will of God to impart to all. Though excluded
Optatus (b. iv. p. 96) uses to Parmenian " from fellowship in holy duties with the
:

" You batter the law to such purpose that visible church," he is still a member of such
wherever 3'ou find the word Water there you visible church. (Ep. 73, xvi. We must take
conjure out of it some sense to our disadvan- the fragmentary quotation, 75, i., " Si quis
tage." He probably originated the applica- ergo a quacunque haeresi venerit " with the
tion of Ecclus. xxxiv. 25, " Qui baptizatur a other, " In nomine Christi baptizatus," and
mortuo quid proficit lavatio ejus," which the cf. Routh, R. S. vol. iii. p. 183.) The only
Donatists constantly quote against Augustine, real blot which Cyprian struck was the vulgar
and which Augustine answers only by referring explanation of the laying on of hands at re-
mortuus to a heathen priest or vicious Chris- admission. Upon that hypothesis his own
tian instead of a heretic. He quotes several view was justifiable. But the act was not
times the LXX addition to Prov. ix. 19, really understood by the intelligent to be the
" Drink not of the strange font," and Jer. xv. imparting of the Spirit for the first time to
18, ii. 13, " deceiving waters," " broken those who had it not it was the renewing by ;

cisterns." In some of these applications there the Spirit, and introducing to communion of a
is poetical force, as of his favourite " garden repentant and now enlightened child of God.§
enclosed and fountain sealed," and of the " A son of God " in spite of any theological
doctrines of New Birth and Sonship (Ep. 74, error, Stephen declares him in the fullest sense
V. vi.) ; in Heresy who was never the Spotless to be (Ep. 74, vi. 75, xvii.). The expression
;

Spouse we can never find a mother (Ep. 75). seems to have been much cavilled at in Car-
To this Stephen finely answers that she was thage, and is mentioned even in Ep. 72, after
an unnatural mother indeed (75, xiv.) who ex- the second council. And now it ought to
posed her children so soon as they were born,
* Animosus, iracundus again, audacia, insolentia,
but that the church's part was to seek them ;

and bring them home and rear them for Christ. inhumanitas are some of the sins charged to him.
t Of the use they made of Cyprian himself see Aug.
Dispersed as this system of Cyprian's lies, contra Crescon. II. xxiii. 40 " Scripta Cypriani nobis :

through his correspondence and tracts, it will tanquam firmamenta canonicae auctoritatis op-
be seen that in his mind it was not fragmen- ponitis." Cf. Ep. 93, ad Vincent. Epp. 108, 9, ;

tary, but logical and coherent. Over the ad Macrob.


theory promulgated by one of his powers and X Optatus, b. V. p. 99, well expresses it
" Has :

res unicuique non ejusdem rei operarius sed credentis


character, backed by an army of bishops,'*
fides et Irinitas praestat." By
implication he an-
moving as one man under him, vet indepen- swers many of the detailed difficulties, but the great
dent enough each to find their own telling name of Cyprian visibly lestrains him. Again, p.
arguments (Cone. III.), Stephen's triumph 103 :
" Omnes qui baptizant opcrarios esse non
without a council, against remonstrances dominos et sacramenta per se sancta esse non per
from the East, and hindered by his own pre- homines."
§ Besides its use in ordination the imposition of
hands had three intentions: (i) Confirmation. (2)
• Some required exorcism (Sentt. 7, 8, 31) ; some Reception of penitents. (3) Exorcism. The 2nd is
declared heretics worse than heathens —a painfully what Stephen applies here. The 3rd was desired by
early development. some extreme partisans.
— §;

CYPRIANUS CYPRIANUS 231

be noticed that (as the Novatianists saw) be inferred — from the absolute unanimity
(i)
Cyprian had a real point of contact with Nova- of the 87 utterances(2)
;
from the strange
tianism. In the instance of Lapse he dis- avowal of two, that, being incompetent to give
covered its fallacy. In the instance of Heresy an opinion, they vote with the majority
he fell into it. The visible church, according (3) from the very important and powerful
to him, included the worst moral sinner in contemporary work of the " Auctor de Re-
expectation of his penitence it excluded the
; baptismate " (4) from the silent reversal of
;

most virtuous and orthodox baptized Christian the decision.


who had not been baptized by a catholic min- —
The Last Persecution. Of the 31 Numidian
ister.* Nevertheless, although the Roman bishops who sat in the great council, the next
church then took a wider view than Cyprian glimpse of church offices shews 9 as convicts *
as to the sonship of man to God, Cyprian was in the mines metallum Siguense (? Siga, where
much greater (and this is the true church- there were copper-mines in Rlauritania, or
moral of this part of his history) upon the Siguita in Numidia itself) and in two other
possibility and duty of union in diversity. places, t A subdeacon and four acolytes were
Augustine well draws out the independence of commissioned by the metropolitan (already
thought and action which Cyprian wished to himself an exile) and his friend Quirinus to
be maintained without exclusiveness, and visit them, and supply them with necessaries
tells us (Aug. v. de Bapt. 17) how he was (Epp. 77-yoi). Cyprian had been apprehended,
never weary of reading the conclusion of the as perhaps the first African prisoner (Epp.
Ep. to Quintus. Every bishop was free to 77-78), in Aug. A.D. 257. Valerian's first edict
judge for himself, none to be persecuted for (Acta Proconsulis, and Acta Praef. Augustalis)
his views, and therefore every one to be tender had then been issued on the suggestion of
of the bonds of peace :
" Salvo jure commu- Macrianus, a principal patron of the Egyptian
nionis diversa sentire." The unanimity of " Magi," after a long administration of fairness
such early councils and their erroneousness to the Christians. The " eighth " persecution
are a remarkable monition. Not packed, not lasted the Apocalyptic 42 months until his
pressed ; the question broad no attack on
;
death in 260. (Dion. Al. ap. Pearson, Ann.
an individual ; only a principle sought the;
Cyp. p. 59 Eus. vii. 10, v. ii. 70.) On Aug. 2,
;

assembly representative ; each bishop the 257, before the exile of Cyprian, Stephen died.
elect of his flock ;and all men of the world,"
" His reputation as a martyr, dating from the
often christianized, generally ordained late in 6th cent., is due to a transference to him of
life; converted against their interests by con- incidents from the death of Xystus, of which
viction formed in an age of freest discussion ;
the singular history is traced by de Rossi,
their Chief one in Whom were rarely blended Roma Sott. Cr. vol. ii. p. 85, etc. He was
intellectual and political ability, with holiness, succeeded on Aug. 25 by Xystus, J whom, not
sweetness, and self-discipline. The conclu- without a stroke at the dead lion, Pontius
sion reached by such an assembly uncharitable, calls " a good pacific high-priest." No
unscriptural, uncatholic, and unanimous. " state enemy " could be treated with more
The consolation as strange as the disappoint- consideration than Cyprian received. Aspasius
ment. The mischief silently and perfectly Paternus, the proconsul, heard him in secre-
healed by the simple working of the Christian tario, and without confiscation or personal
society. Life corrected the error of thought. restraint simply required his retirement to
Augustine beautifully writes " It is of no Curubis, a free town, near the sea (in deserto
:

light moment that though the question was loco), lonely, but pleasant, and well supplied
agitated among bishops of an age anterior to (Pontius cf. Gibbon, vol. ii. 248, Smith's ed.).
;

the faction of Donatus, and although opinions It was at the same time that the withdrawal
differed without the unity of the colleagues of Dionysius was ordered and performed (Eus.
being marred, still this our present use has vii. 11). On Sept. 14 a dream, related at once
been settled to be observed throughout the to his friends, was found after his martyrdom
whole Catholic church diffused throughout to have foretold it for that day year. Attend-
the world " (contra Crescon. i. xxxii. 38). The ed by his deacon, and allowed the presence of
disappearance of the Cyprianic decisions has friends, and " offering," no doubt, as in his
its hope for us when we look on bonds seem- former banishment, " his daily sacrifice," he
ingly inextricable, and steps as yet irre- actively organized relief for more helpless
trievable. It may be noted, as affording sufferers and subsidized them largely himself.
some clue to the one-sided decisions, that the After II months spent thus, the new proconsul
laity were silent, though Cyprian seemed Galerius Maximus, already a dying man, re-
pledged to some consultation with them. called him to his home in Carthage (horti).
(See esp. Ep. 31 and 19, ii.) It must have When a rumour arrived that Marcianus,
been among them that there were in existence * Morcelli, Africa Christiana, vol. i. p. 21, questions
and at work those very principles which so whether the separate Praeses Numidiae was con-
soon not only rose to the surface, but over- tinued long after Septimius, apparently not noticing
powered the voices of her bishops for the (Cyp. Ep. 77, ii.) that these confessors were tried
before the Praeses.
general good. It was a parliament of
t Pearson supposes a marble-quarry to be their
officials, provincial governors. That it did work-place tenebrae and teter odor fumi indicate
not represent church opinion (that, namely, mining and smelting rather.
which we now accept as church doctrine), may X See these calculations in Lipsius, Chron. d. Rom.
Bisch. p. 213.
* Thus the extreme of sacerdotalism was a fixed
§ Gibbon strangely seems to have understood the
tenet with our own Puritan divines, who held the words documentum professionis dedit (i.e. taught how
minister " to be of the substance of the sacrament." to hold fast our profession) to mean " an account of
Cf. Hooker, Ec. Pol. V. Ixi. Neander, vol. i. p. his behaviour was published for the edification of the
5 ;

540, Bohn tr. Christian world " [Ep. 77).


232 CYPRIANUS CYPRIANUS
"entrusted with the whole republic" by was removed from his home on Aug. 13 the ;

Valerian, now on his last march to Persia, was magistrate's broken health prolonged the ex-
determined to carry things to an extremity amination ; but the prisoner's rank shielded
with Christians, Cyprian was probably the him from suffering or indignity. Though the
first African who procured a copy of the tre- language of the judge was stern, the Christians
mendous rescript, and of the letter which was confessed the reluctance with which he gave
about to be issued to the Praesides (Ep. 80). sentence. In them sense of triumph in the
The proconsul in Cyprian's trial mentions both possession of such a martyr is dwelt on with
the extension of capital penalties to presbyters, almost as much force as the sense of loss.
and the new prohibition of the use of ceme- With a strange mingled feeling, characteristic
teries for worship. His messenger returned of the vividness with which in intense moments
with the full intelligence of sweeping measures circumstances are apprehended which would
before their publication, and with news that at other times be trivial, they marked how
Xystus had been beheaded (Pont. Vit. Cyp. little incidents combined to do him honour.
xii. ;Leon. Sacr. Muratori, vol. i. p. 391) on The seat he rested on for the last time hap-
Sunday, Aug. 5, in the cemetery of Praetex- pened to be covered with a white cloth, the
tatus * when actually " teaching " in his episcopal emblem. The trees were climbed,
episcopal chair, and with him four of the great as he passed, by many a Zacchaeus. The eve
Roman deacons. t It may be taken as and vigil of his mart^'rdom were kept by all
historical fact that on Wed. the 29th of the his flock, watching through the night in the
previous June, Xystus had translated the streets before his house, when as yet the only
supposed remains of St. Peter to the cemetery vigil of the Christian year was that which
known as Cata Cumbas, on the Appian Way, preceded the day of Christ's own Passion.-.
and those of St. Paul to the Ostian Way. It The idea of this parallel took such hold that
is possible that this increasing reverence to Augustine carries it to a painful pitch (Serm.
two malefactors executed two centuries before 309). The two officers between whom Cyp-
both shewed the magistrates that the spirit of rian rode are compared to the two male-
the sect was becoming more dangerous and factors between whom our Lord went to His
determined them to withdraw from Christians Passion. Pontius compares the words of the
the protection which the burial laws hitherto sentence to the prophecy of Caiaphas. Cyp-
accorded to rites celebrated in connexion with rian received no dying prophecy, nor uttered
places of sepulture and further, that this
; any, though his time was ample. His words
occasioned a withdrawal from the better- were very few, and no exhortation could have
"
known cemetery of Callistus to the more ob- been so eloquent asthe " Thanks be to God
scure one of Praetextatus (see de Rossi, Rom. with which he answered the judgment " Our :

Soli. vol. ii. p. 41 and Lips, ll.cc), and the


; pleasure is that Thascius Cyprianus be exe-
death of Xystus in that place. The news of it cuted by the sword."
had scarcely reached Carthage when Galerius, Personal. Theological, and Political Effective-
now in residence at Utica, summoned Cyprian ness. — To sum up the effect of Cyprian's 13
thither in honourable form {Ep. 81). Having years' episcopate in briefest terms. Over and
previously refused offers of a retreat, urged on above, (i) the socm/impressiveness for the time
him even by heathens, he now said he was re- of a convert with such culture and such mental
solved not to die, or utter the dying prophecy habits, and of that perfect tTrieix-fiaand TrpqdTiis
with which he apparently expected to be in- to which Augustine constantly reverts with
spired, away from his people. Accordingly, delight, comes (2) his Philosophy. It is usual
informed of the dispatch before it came, he to expand the fact that he was no philosopher.
went into hiding in Carthage, there to await Nevertheless his writings on Resentment,
the proconsul's return. On his return, he Patience, Probation, Envy, Self-devotion, are
reappeared and reoccupied his own house, t most able essays towards establishing a new
The details of the trial are too numerous to Christian basis of Morals, and have a per-
repeat and too remarkable to abridge. They manent place in the series. (3) Evidences. As
are found not only in the narrative of Pontius, both contemporary Judaism and
against
but also in a " Passion of Cyprian," which we contemporary paganism his collections have
have in different forms, and which from its a distinct worth. (4) Interpretation. He has
simplicity, provinciality, and minute topo- a free ideal scheme before him (Ep. 64), but
graphy, must be contemporary. § Cyprian in detail falls from it, and makes mere riddles
• After II months and 12 (6 ?) days' episcopate.
of texts. (5) Organization. This is the real
Eusebius, by an error, in which he indulges in other epigraph of his career. The magnitude of the
instances, ascribes to him years for months both in effect he produced is incomparably greater
chronicle and history and Jerome repeats it from than that of any other person, not excepting
;

him. So in vii. 15 he seems to speak of him as alive Hildebrand. (a) The Church Council, a local
after the edict of restoration. See Lipsius, I.e. and doubtful institution before, became
t Sic lei;e " cum eo diacones quattuor." through his management a necessary insti-
t Nothing is more self-consistent than the lan-
guage of Ep. 83, or more inconsistent with Gibbon's tution and the imperial power of the church,
" recovering that fortitude which his character re- and, with its system of representation by a
quired." life-aristocracy popularly elected, and its free
§ They are entitled Acta Proconsularia, and so discussionary scheme, exercised an important
accepted by Pearson and Gibbon. Aug. Serm. 309
seems to quote either this Passio or some earlier how could a Christian report be so styled, or how
document which is now embedded in it. Ep. 77, ii. could a heathen one give the details with such advan-
refers to Cy-prian's confession " Apud Acta procon- tage to the prisoners ? Dionysius Alex, refers a
sulis " just after it was made. Does Acta mean carping adversary to the record of his own trial
merely " trial before " ? (Cf. Optat. B. iii. p. 68, before Aemilian, then prefect of Egypt (Eus. vol. J.
apud acta locuti sunt.) If it means " official report," p. 384, notes on viieixvr)fj.aTia9r)).
CYPRIANUS CYRIACUS 233

function in the regeneration of liberty, (b) the Ante-Nicene Lib. (T. & T. Clark). A
Episcopacy grew silently into an institution of simple monograph on his Life and Times is
the Roman empire, strong with the lasting pub. in the cheap A. and M. Theol. Lib.
virtues of Roman institutions, and only biding (Griffith) ; and an Eng. trans, of his treatise
its time for recognition. (6) The Individual On the Lord's Prayer by T. H. Bindley is pub.
Independence, as he sketches it, of elected byS.P.C.K. the text, with trans., has been
;

bishops preserved, while it remained, a grand ed. by Rev. H. Gee (Bell).]


democratic strength to what after a time sank Cyra. [Marana.]
to an oligarchic, and under the papacy to an Cyriacus (19), 30th patriarch of Constanti-
administrative, magistracy. This must again nople, A.D. 595. He was previously presbyter
be the key of church governments in states and steward, iIkov6ij.os, of the great church at
which have not that intimate union with the Constantinople {Chronicon Paschale, p. 378).
church which the ideal of a Christian nation Gregory the Great received the legates bearing
requires. We
here give references on the the synodal letters which announced his conse-
subject of this Independence, which to the cration, partly from a desire not to disturb the
policy of Cyprian's time was so essential (Ep. peace of the church, and partly from the per-
55, xvii. ; actum suum, etc., 72, iv. ;
quando sonal respect which he entertained for Cyriac;
habet, etc., 73, xxxvi. ; nemini praescribentes, but in his reply he warned him against the
etc., 57, vi. si de collegis, etc., 69, xvii. ;
; sin of causing divisions in the church, clearly
statuat. Sentt. Epp. Praef. 6). There exists alluding to the use of the term oecumenical
what may be called " resistance to Roman bishop (Gregorii Ep. lib. vii. 4, Patr. Lat.
claims"; but Cyprian is totally unconscious Ixxvii. 853). The personal feelings of Gregory
of any claims made by the see, and resists towards Cvriac appear most friendly.
Stephen purely as an arrogant individual. Cyriac did not attend to the entreaties of
Cultus. —
There were two famous basilicas Gregory that he would abstain from using the
erected, one on the place of his martyrdom [in title, for Gregory wrote afterwards both to him
agro sexti), where was the Mensa Cypriani, and to the emperor Maurice, declaring that he
from which Augustine often preached the ; could not allow his legates to remain in com-
other on the shore (Aug. Conf. v. ad Map- ; munion with Cyriac as long as he retained it.
palia, Aug. vol. vii. App. p. 37 ad Piscinas,; In the latter of these letters he compares the
Victor Vitens. i. v. iv.). In this Monica spent assumption of the title to the sin of Anti-
the night of her son's departure for Italy, christ, since both exhibit a spirit of lawless
praying and weeping. In Sulpicius Severus pride. " Quisquis se universalem sacerdotem
{Dial. i. 3) his friend comes hither to pray on vocat, vel vocari desiderat, in elatione sua
his way from Narbonne to Egypt. The ador- Antichristum praecurrit, quia superbiendo se
ation reached such a height that Gibbon is ceteris praeponit" (Greg.jEp.28, 30). Inaletter
charmed to call him " almost a local deity." to Anastasius of Antioch, who had written to
His feast and the gales which blew then were him to remonstrate against disturbing the
called Cypriani (Procop. Vand. i. 20, 21 ;
peace of the church, Gregory defends his con-
Greg. Naz. Or. 18, ap. Ducange, s.v.). There duct on the ground of the injury which Cyriac
are still on the " brink of the shore " the had done to all other patriarchs by the assump-
massive ruins of a church which must be St. tion of the title, and reminds Anastasius that
Cyprian's. Davis {Carthage and her Remains, not only heretics but heresiarchs had before
p. 389) describes them fully, and it is not hard this been patriarchs of Constantinople. He
to see how he has misled himself into not also deprecates the use of the term on more
recognizing what they are. The relics of general grounds {Ep. 24). In spite of all
Cyprian were given (strange conjunction) by this Cyriac was firm in his retention of the
Haroun al Raschid to Charlemagne. The title,and appears to have summoned, or to
sequel may be seen in Ruinart, Acta Mm. have meditated summoning, a council to
Cypr. § 17, and in the epistle of J. de la Haye, authorize its use. For in a.d. 599 Gregory
prefixed to Pamelius's Cyprian, fol. b. 3. wrote to Eusebius of Thessalonica and some
Texts. —
Of the MSS. and their connexions, other bishops, stating that he had heard they
and also of the edd., a good account is given bv were about to be summoned to a council at
Hartel in his preface; cf. D. C. B. (4- vol. ed.). Constantinople, and most urgently entreating
Besides the ed. in Patr. Lat may be men- them to yield neither to force nor to persua-
tioned one by D. J. H. Goldhorn (Leipz. sion, but to be steadfast in their refusal to
1838), a useful text-book, well emended. But recognize the offensive title {ib. lib. ix. 68 in
the best ed. now is by J. Hartel (3 vols. 8vo, Patr. Lat.). Cyriac appears to have shared in
1868-1871), in the Vienna Corpus Scriptt. Eccll. that unpopularity of the emperor Maurice
Latt., which contains all the works attributed which caused his deposition and death (Theo-
to Cyprian, with the ad Novatianum, Auctor phan. Chron. p. 242, a.m. 6094 ;
Niceph.
de Rebaptismate, Pontii Vita, etc., and Indices. Callis. H. E. xviii. 40 ; Theophylact. Hist.
It is a new recension, for which above 40 MSS. viii. 9). He still, however, had influence
have been studied, classified, valued, and re- enough to exact from Phocas at his coronation
duced to a most clear apparatus criticus, with a confession of the orthodox faith and a pledge
keen attention to orthography, and almost not to disturb the church (Theoph. Chron.
always a judicious discrimination of the p. 243, A.M. 6094). He also nobly resisted the
preferable readings a valuable preface on
; attempt of Phocas to drag the empress Con-
the principles and history of the text- stantia and her daughters from their sanctuary
formation, [e.w.b.] in a church of Constantinople {ib. p. 246, a.m.
[The authoritative work on St. Cyprian is'by 6098). Perhaps some resentment at this op-
the writer of this art. English trans, of several position to his will may have induced Phocas
of Cyprian's works and his Epp. are given in to accede more readily to the claims of Boni-
234 CYMLLUS CYRILLUS
face III. that Rome should be considered to pudiate his ordination by Maximus that ;

be the head of all the church, in exclusion of Cyril consented to the humiliating terms,
the claims of Constantinople to the oecumeni- served some time in the church as a deacon,
cal bishopric {Vita Bonifacii III. apud Labbe, and was then rewarded with the episcopate
Acta Concil. t. v. 1615). Cyriac died in 606, and by Acacius, the semi-Arian bp. of Caesarea,
was interred in the church of the Holy Apostles and according to the seventh Nicene canon
{Chronicon Paschale, p. 381). He appears to metropolitan of Palestine that C\Til then
;

have been a man of remarkable piety and dishonourably persecuted Heraclius, whom
earnestness, able to win the esteem of all Maximus, on his deathbed, had nominated his
parties. He built a church dedicated to the successor, and degraded him to the presbyter-
GeoTOKOs in a street of Constantinople called ate. This account is supported by Rufinus
Diaconissa (Theoph. Chron. 233, a.m. 6090 ;
(H. E. i. 23, " Sacerdotio, confusa jam or-
Niceph. Callis. H. E. xviii. 42). fp.o.] dinatione, suscepto "). Socrates and Sozo-
CyrlllUS (2), Ki'^ptXXos, bp. of Jerusalem, was men, though they say nothing of C\'rirs re-
probably born in Jerusalem or its immediate pudiation of his orders, are almost equally
neighbourhood, c. 315. His writings prove unfavourable to his orthodoxy, identif^'ing
that his education was liberal, and embraced him with the semi-Arian party of Acacius and
a large variety of subjects. Touttee has Patrophilus. They also introduce a new
laboriously collected evidences (c. ii.) of his element of confusion by the statement that
acquaintance with physics, dialectics, phy- the see of Jerusalem was vacant not by death,
siology, mythology, etc. That he was a but by Maximus's deposition and expulsion
diligent student of Holy Scripture is certain, by the semi-Arians (Socr. ii. 38 Soz. iv. 20
; ;

from the intimate knowledge, at least of the Theophan. Chronograph, p. 34). This ma-^t
text, shewn in his Catecheses. But he was safely be rejected. In refutation of Jerome's
only acquainted with the LXX. His know- account, Cyril's advocates triumphantly point
ledge of Hebrew was only second-hand, and to the synodical letter to pope Damasus of the
often incorrect. He was ordained deacon bishops assembled at Constantinople, the year
probably by Macarius bp. of Jerusalem, c. 335 after the second oecumenical synod, a.d.
(Soz. H. E. iv. 20, where the text is doubtful), 382, which speaks of C>Til in terms of high
and priest by his successor Maximus, c. 345. eulogy, as a champion of the orthodox faith
Maximus, notwithstanding Cyril's youth, en- against Arian heresy, and affirms his canonical
trusted him with the responsible duty of election to the see of Jerusalem (Theod. H. E.
instructing catechumens, and preparing them V. 9). But this does not touch the point
for baptism. He also allowed him the ex- at issue. Acacius was the metropolitan of
ceptional privilege, sometimes granted by Cyril's province. He and his fellow-bishops
bishops to presbyters of eminent ability (e.g. were, notwithstanding their heretical bias,
to Chrysostom by Flavian of Antioch, and to the legitimate authorities for conferring the
Augustine by Valerius of Hippo), of preaching episcopate. Cyril's election and consecration
to the people in full church on the Lord's was therefore strictly canonical. Besides, the
Day. In his office of catechist, c. 347, Cyril silence of the members of the synod as to facts
delivered the catechetical lectures by which occurring 30 years before does not disprove
his name is chiefly known (Hieron. de Vir. them. Whatever might have been Cwil's
Illust. § 12). These lectures were preached earlier heretical failings, he was on the ortho-
without book on the evenings of the weeks of dox side then (cf. Socr. v. 8, and Soz. vii. 7).
Lent, in the basilica of the Holy Cross, or His adhesion was valuable, and it would have
Martyrhim, erected on Calvary by St. Helena. been as impolitic as it was needless to revive
His references to the locality are numerous and an almost forgotten scandal. Yet C^Ti^s
interesting (e.g. iv. 10-14, x. 19, xiii. 4, 22, 39, own writings quite forbid us to follow Jerome's
xviii. 33). The five mystagogical lectures authority in classing him with the Arians, or
were addressed during Easter-week at noon to charging him with heretical tenets. Circum-
those baptized on Easter-eve in the Anastasis, stances might render his orthodoxy equivocal.
or church of the Holy Sepulchre. His early patron, Maximus, was somewhat of
The episcopate of Maximus terminated at a waverer. His friends and associates were
the close of 350 or the beginning of 351, and semi-Arians, and he was chosen to the episco-
Cyril was chosen to fill the episcopal chair of pate by them, with the hope of his supporting
Jerusalem. A cloud of doubt and difficulty their cause. But no error of doctrine is to be
hangs over his elevation to the episcopate. discovered in his writings, though he avoids
Jerome can hardly have been mistaken as to the test word " homoousion " in his cate-
the main fact, tiiough theological prejudice cheses. He is well characterized by the Due
and personal dislike may have warped his de Broglie (VEglise et VEmpire, 402) as
iii.
judgment and caused him to represent the " formant I'extremite de I'aile droite du Senii-
case in the least favourable light. On some arianisme touchant a I'orthodoxie, ou de I'aile
leading questions Cyril and Jerome were gauche de I'orthodoxie touchant au Semi-
decidedly opposed. In the great controversy arianismc," and may be regarded, certainly
of the day Cyril belonged to the Asiatic party, in the later part of his life, as one of those of
Jerome to that of Rome. In the Meletian whom Athanasius speaks (de Synod. 41) as
schism at Antioch also they took opposite " brothers who mean what we mean, and only
sides : Cyril supporting Mcletius, Jerome be- differ about the word." The first year of
ing a warm adherent of Paulinus. Jerome Cyril's episcopate was rendered memorable by
asserts (Chronicon ad ann. 349) that on the the appearance. May 7, 351, of a remarkable
death of Maximus the Arians invaded the parheUon, or other atmospheric phenomenon,
church of Jerusalem and promised to appoint over Jerusalem, which was regarded as a
Cyril to the vacant throne if he would re- miraculous manifestation of the symbol of

CYMLLUS CYRILLUS 235

redemption intended to establish the faith and laid his appeal before the council of Seleucia,
confute gainsayers, and produced great excite- at which he took his place among the semi-
ment in the city. The churches were thronged Arians. Acacius vehemently protested against
with worshippers, and many Jews and Gen- his admission to the council. " If Cyril did
tiles were converted to the faith. So important not leave the synod, he must." Some of the
did the phenomenon appear to Cyril that he bishops, in the cause of peace, begged Cyril
wrote to the emperor Constantius describing to yield, at least temporarily, till his appeal
it. This letter has been preserved. Its had been heard. Cyril refused, and Acacius
authenticity has been called in question by quitted the council, but soon returned, and
Rivet, but the internal evidence from the took a leading part in the subsequent stormy
similarity of style is strong, and it is accepted debates. The semi-Arians who were opposed
by Blondel. The occurrence of the word to Acacius were in the ascendant. Acacius
" homoousion " at the close of the letter is, was himself deposed, and C\Til restored
however, suspicious, and leads us to question (Theod. ii. 26 Socr. ii. 40
; ; Soz. iv. 22 ;

whether the prayer for the emperor in which Philost. iv. 12). Acacius and his friends at
it stands is not a later addition (Soz. iv. 5 ;
once started for the capital, where they easily
Philostorg. iii. 26 ; Chron. Alex. p. 678 ;
persuaded the weak Constantius to summon a
Theophan. p. 35 a). If Acacius had reck- fresh council. Fresh accusations were added
oned on Cyril as a faithful adherent and ready to those formerly adduced. The charge of
instrument in carrying out his plans, the fal- sacrilegiously disposing of the church goods
lacy of his expectations was very soon shewn. was revived, and the emperor's indignation
Scarcely had Cyril established himself in his was excited by hearing that a baptismal robe
see when a distressing controversy, which be- of gold brocade, presented by his father Con-
came the source of much evil to the church, stantine to Macarius, which had been sold, had
arose as to the claim to priority of their re- unfortunately found its way into the ward-
spective sees (Theod. ii. 25 ; Soz. iv. 25). robe of a theatre, and been recognized on the
Cyril grounded his claim on the apostolical stage. Acacius's arts prevailed, and Cyril was
rank of his see, Acacius on the decision of the a second time banished (Socr. ii. 42 Soz. iv.
;

council of Nice (Can. vii.), which placed the 25 Theod. ii. 27).

;

bp. of Aeha i.e. Jerusalem under the bp. On the accession of Julian, 361, Cyril was
of Caesarea as metropolitan. This contest reinstated, together with all the exiled bishops
for pre-eminence was speedily embittered by (Socr. iv. I Soz. u.s.
; Theod. iii. 4
; Amm.
;

mutual accusations of heterodoxy (Soz. iv. Marcell. xxii. 5). At Jerusalem Cyril calmly
25). For two years Acacius continued vainly watched the attempts of Julian to rebuild the
summoning C>Til to his tribunal, and at last Temple, and foretold that it must fail (Socr.
cut the controversy short by deposing him iii. 20 Rufinus, i. 37).
;

from his see (Soz. u.s., 357 or 358) at a small During the reign of the orthodox Jovian
packed synod of his own adherents. The C^'ril's episcopate was undisturbed, and the
ostensible grounds were very trivial : con- accession of Valens and Valentinian found
tumacy in refusing to appear, and the charge him in quiet possession of his see, 364. In
— afterwards brought against Ambrose by the 366 Acacius died, and Cyril immediately

Arians of having sold some of the church claimed the nomination to the see of Caesarea,
ornaments during a prevailing scarcity to and appointed Philomenus. Philomenus was
supply the wants of the poor (Socr. ii. 40 Soz. deposed by the Eutychian faction, and another
;

iv. 25; Theod. ii. 26 Epiphan. Haeres. Ixxiii. C>Til substituted. He, in return, was deposed
;

§§23-27), and also of having held communion by Cyril of Jerusalem, who consecrated his
with Eustathius and Elpidius after their de- sister's son Gelasius in his room, a.d. 367
position by the synod of Mehtina, in Lesser (Epiphan. Haer. Ixxiii. 37). In 367 Cyril
Arnienia (Soz. lis. ;Basil. Ep. 253 [74]). was a third time deposed and exiled, with all
Cyril was forced to yield. He left his see, not, the prelates recalled by Julian, by the edict of
however, without an appeal to a larger council, the Arian Valens (Socr. ii. 45 Soz. iv. 30
; ;

the justice of which was allowed bv Constan- Epiph. Haer. Ixvi. 20). His banishment
tius. This is noted by Socrates (ii.'4o) as the lasted till Valens died and Theodosius suc-
first instance of an appeal against the decision ceeded, Jan. 19, 379, when he reoccupied his
of an ecclesiastical synod. On leaving Jeru- see, which he retained quietly for the 8
salem Cyril first retired to Antioch and remaining years of his life (Hieron. Vir. III.
thence to Tarsus, where he was hospitably c. 112 Socr. v. 3
; Soz. vii. 2).
;
On his return
received by the bp. Silvanus, one of the best he found Jerusalem rent with schisms, infested
of the semi-Arians, who availed himself of with almost every form of heresy, and polluted
Cyril's powers as a preacher. We find him by the most flagrant crimes. To combat these
also here in communion and friendship with evils he appealed to the council held at An-
other leading members of the same party, tioch, 379, which dispatched Gregory Nyssen
Eustathius of Sebaste, Basil of Ancyra, and to his aid. But the disease was too deeply
George of Laodicea (Soz. iv. 25 ; Philost. iv. seated to admit of an easy or speedy remedy.
12). The enmity of Acacius pursued his rival. Gregory departed hopeless of a cure, and in
Silvanus was warned against holding com- his Warning against Pilgrimages drew a dark
munion with one who had been deposed for picture of the depravation of morals in the
contumacy and other crim^es. But Cyril had Holy City (de Euntibus Hieros. p. 656). In
gamed great popularity at Tarsus bv his 381 Cyril was present at the second oecumeni-
sermons, the people would not hear of his cal council held at Constantinople, when he
leaving them, and Silvanus declined to attend took rank with the chief metropolitans, the
to the admonition (Theod. u.s.). Nearlv bps. of Alexandria and Antioch. He there
two years after his deposition, Sept. 359, C>Til declared his full adhesion to the Nicene faith,

236 CYRILLUS CYRILLUS


and his acceptance of the test word " homo- untempered zeal, as if the fierce spirit cf
ousion " (Socr. iv. 8 ; Soz. iv. 7). Theophilus were governing his conduct. He
Cyril died Mar. 18, 386 (Socr. v. 15 ; Soz. shut up the chamber of the Novatianists, took
vii. 14 Bolland. Mar. 18, p. 625 b).
; He was away their " sacred treasure," and deprived
bp. of Jerusalem for 35 years, 16 of which he their bishop, Theopemptus, of all his property
passed in exile. (Socr. vii. 7). He then made an attack upon
His works consist of 18 " Catechetical lec- the large body of Jewish residents. They
tures " addressed to catechumens {KaTrixrjcrei.s had provoked him by implacable hostility.
(pbrri^ofjiei'wv), and 5 "Mystagogical lectures" to One Hierax, a schoolmaster, always foremost
the newly baptized {/xivTayioytKai KaTrjxri<^f(.i in applauding Cyril's sermons, was denounced
TTpos Toi's v(0(pioT[<TTOvs)- Thcsc wcrc com- by the Jews as an encourager of sedition when
posed in his youth (As iv ttj vedrriTi (rvv^Ta^ef, he was in the theatre at the promulgation of
Hieron. de Vir. III. c. 112), c. 347, while still a prefectorial edict. Orestes, the prefect, who
a presbyter. The " Catechetical lectures " hated Cyril as a formidable rival potentate,
possess considerable interest as the earliest had Hierax publicly tortured in the theatre.
example extant of a formal system of theo- Cyril thereupon tried the effect of menaces on
logy ;
from their testimony to the canon of the prmcipal Jews of Alexandria. This only
Scripture, the teaching of the church on the increased their bitterness they began to
;

chief articles of the creed, and on the sacra- organize plots against the Christians and ;

nients ;
and from the light they throw on the one night a cry rang through the streets that
ritual of the 4th cent. The perfect agreement " Alexander's church was on fire." The
of his teaching, as Dr. Newman remarks (Lib. Christians rushed to save their sanctuary :

of the Fathers, vol. ii. part i. pp. ix.-x.), as the Jews, recognizing each other, as pre-
regards the Trinity, with the divines of the arranged, by rings made from the bark of
Athanasian school, is of great weight in deter- palm branches, slew the Christians whom they
mining the true doctrine of the early church on met. At daybreak Cyril, at the head of an
that fundamental question, and relieves Cyril immense crowd, took forcible possession of
from all suspicion of heterodoxy. But his the synagogues, expelled the Jews from the
Catecheses do not rank high as argumentative city and abandoned their property to plunder.
or expository work, nor has Cyril any claim Orestes, naturally indignant, complained to
to a place among the masters of Christian the emperor, Theodosius II., then a boy of
thought, whose writings form the permanent fourteen. Cyril addressed to the court an
riches of the church. account of the Jewish outrages, and, at the
All previous editions of his works were sur- suggestion of the people, endeavoured to
passed by the Benedictine ed. of A. A. Touttee pacify the prefect. Orestes would not listen.
(Paris, 1720, fol., and Venice, 1761, fol.). The Cyril extended to him, as a form of solemn
introduction contains very elaborate and appeal, the book of the Gospels it might well
;

exhaustive dissertations on his hfe, writings, have occurred to Orestes that the archbishop
and doctrines. These are reprinted in Migne's had forgotten some of its precepts when he
Patrologia, vol. xxxiii. in person led a multitude of Christian zealots
The chief modern authorities for Cyril's life to revenge one violence by another. The
and doctrines are Touttee, u.s. Tillem. Me- gifted female philosopher, Hypatia, the boast
;

moires Eccles. vol. viii. ;Cave, Historia Lit. i. of Alexandrian paganism, was dragged from
211, 212 Schrockh, Kirchengeschichte, xii. her carriage into the great Caesarean church,
;

343 seq. Newman, preface to the Oxf. trans., where her body was torn to pieces. This
;

Lib. of the Fathers, ii. i. Newman's trans, hideous crime, done in a sacred place and in

was carefully revised by Dr. E. H. Gifford in a sacred season it was the Lent of 415
the Lib. of Nicene and Post-Nicene Fathers brought, as Socrates expresses it (vii. 15), " no
(1894), and furnished with a very important small reproach on Cyril and the church of the
introduction. [e.v.] Alexandrians." Was this foul murder
Cyrillus (7), St., archbp. of Alexandria. He what Gibbon calls it, an " exploit of Cyril's " ?
was a native of Alexandria, and had learned Did he take any part in it, or approve it ex
theology under monastic discipline in " the post facto ? It has been said that " Cyril was
desert." During this period he had been re- suspected, even by the orthodox, of complicity
proved by Isidore of Pelusimn, who was for years in the murder " (Stanley's Lect. on East. Ch.
his venerated monitor, for occupying himself, 293). Socrates, as sympathizing with the
even in " solitude," with worldly thoughts and Novatianists, has been considered to do Cyril
interests (Isid. Ep. i. 25) ;and it is evident less than justice but he does not suggest
;

from his whole career that so strong a will and such a suspicion against him, or against the
so vehement a nature could never be thor- whole church of Alexandria. He says, fairly,
oughly satisfied with a life of contemplation. that this church and its chief pastor were to
After five years' abode in mount Nitria, his some extent disgraced by such a deed of
uncle, the then archbp. Theophilus, summoned members of it. As for Damascius's assertion
him to Alexandria, where he was ordained, that Cyril really prompted the murder (Suidas,
and expounded and preached with great p. 1059), we cannot consider as evidence the
reputation (Neale, Hist. Alex. i. 226). Theo- statement of a pagan philosopher who lived
philus died Oct. 15, a.d. 412. Cyril was put about 130 years after the event, and was a
forward for the vacant chair ; and after a thorough hater of Christianity. We are
tumultuous contest was enthroned, three days justified in regarding it, with Canon Robertson
after his uncle's death. (See his first Paschal {Hist. Ch. i. 401), as "an unsupported
homily.) His episcopate, begun in trouble calumny " but, as he adds, " the perpetrators
;

and discord, seemed at first to forebode were mostly officers of his church, and had
nothing better than a course of violent and unquestionably derived encouragement from

CYRILLUS CYMLLUS 237

Cyril's earlier proceedings; and his character argued, that Jesus Christ was God, it was by
deservedly suffered in consequence." The consequence not less true that His mother
turbulent and furious " parabolani " and was '"Theotokos." If she was not rightly so
others, who shed Hypatia's blood at the foot called, her Son was a human individual ex-
of the altar, were but " bettering the instruc- ternal to the divine nature, and not in a true
tion " which had let them loose upon the sense Emmanuel. This letter cites at length
synagogues. Cyril's name has paid dearly the Nicene Creed in its original form, ignoring
for the error, and the great doctrinal cause the alterations made by the council of Con-
which he upheld so stoutly in after-years has stantinople, and insisting that the creed
suffered for the faults of his earlier life. identified Jesus Christ with the Divine Co-
It was but natural that the government essential Son. Nestorius was much dis-
should the next year restrain the clergy from pleased at the reception given to this letter by
political action, especially by restrictions on some official persons at Constantinople. He
the number and conduct of the parabolani. ordered one Photius to answer it, and en-
Cyril had inherited his uncle's animosity couraged some Alexandrians residing at the
against John Chrysostom, who, in his opinion, imperial city, who had been rebuked by Cyril
had been canonically deposed ;he rejected for gross offences, to prefer complaints against
with bitterness the advice of Atticus of Con- him (Mansi, iv. 1003, 887). On the other
stantinople to place " John's " name on his hand, Cyril, having also been interrogated by
church diptychs [Ep. p. 204) ; and it was not Celestine of Rome as to the genuineness of
until after the memory of that persecuted Nestorius's sermons, wrote his first letter to
saint had been rehabilitated at Constantinople Nestorius (Cyr. Ep. p. 19 ;Mansi, iv. 883),
as well as at Antioch that the archbp. of the point of which was that the prevailing
Alexandria, urged by Isidore of Pelusium excitement had been caused, not by the letter
(Isid. i. 370), consented in 417 to follow these to the monks of Egypt, but by Nestorius's
precedents. (See Tillemont, xiv. 281.) own refusal to allow to Christ's mother a title
We pass over several uneventful years, which was the symbol of her Son's real
during which Cyril doubtless occupied him- Divinity. Cyril also referred to a work On
self in ordinary church affairs and in theo- the Holy and Co-essential Trinity, which he
logical literature, and come to the great con- himself had written in the lifetime of Nes-
troversy with which his name is pre-eminently torius's predecessor Atticus, and in which he
associated. In the end of 428 he became had used language on the Incarnation which
aware of the excitement caused in Constan- harmonized with his letter to the monks.
tinople by the preaching of archbp. Nestorius. Nestorius replied very briefly, and in a
The line of thought which Nestorius had courteous tone ;although he intimated dislike
entered upon (under the influence, as it seems, of what he deemed harsh in Cyril's letter (Cyr.
of Theodore of Mopsuestia) led him to ex- Ep. p. 21 Mansi, iv. 885). He evidently did
;

plain away the mystery of the Incarnation by not wish to quarrel with the see of Alexandria,
reducing it to a mere association between the although he practised considerable severities
Eternal Word and a human Christ. The on monks of his own city who withstood him
Alexandrian see had agents at Constantinople, to the face. Cyril, too, was not forward to
and the denial, by Nestorius and his supporters, press the controversy to extremes. During
of the strict personal oneness between " God the latter part of 429 he was even blamed

the Word " and the Son of Mary expressed by some for inactivity. But he may have
by the formula, " Let no one call Mary Theo- written at this period, as Garnier thinks, his

tokos " was an event which was certain to " Scholia," or " Notes," on the Incarnation of
excite the vigilant zeal of a prelate like Cyril, the Only-begotten (Mar. Merc. ii. 216), and in
opposed, alike by temperament and ante- Feb. 430 (probably after hearing how Nestor-
cedents, to whatever undermined the myste- ius had upheld a bishop named Dorotheus in
rious majesty of the Christian faith. Very his anathema against the word "Theotokos")
early in Jan. 429 Cyril dealt with the subject he wrote, in synod, a second Ep. to Nes-
in his Paschal letter or homily, the 17th of the torius —the letter which became a symbolic
series;
in which, while affirming with great treatise sanctioned by general councils. (See
vividness and emphasis the reality and per- it in Cyr. Ep. p. 22; Mansi, iv. 887 cf. ;

rnanence of Christ's manhood, he enforced the Tillemont, xiv. 338). Nothing can be more
singleness of his Divine Personality, and definite and luminous than his disclaimer of
applied to His human mother, in two distinct all Apollinarian notions, which had been
passages, a phrase even stronger than "Theo- imputed by Nestorius to those who confessed
tokos " MT7)p B«oO. About the end of Apr. the "Theotokos"; his explanation of the
429, when the controversial sermons of Nes- idea intended by that phrase his peremptory
torius— exhibiting no little confusion of
;

exclusion of the theory of a mere association


thought, but clearly indicating a disbelief in as distinct from a hypostatic or personal union,
what is theologically termed the Personal and his not less emphatic assertion of the dis-

Union had reached Egyptian monks, Cyril tinctness of the natures thus brought together
wrote to all who within his jurisdiction were in the one Christ. " Not that the difference
" practising the sohtary life," a long letter, of the natures was annulled by the union, but
upholding the term "Theotokos" in its true rather that one Godhead and Manhood con-
sense, as not meaning " mother of the God- stituted the one Lord Jesus Christ, by their
head," but mother, as regarded the manhood, ineffable concurrence into unity. . Thus
. .

of Him Who, being in the form of God, as- we confess one Christ and Lord." The answer
j
sumed the form of a servant, and, being the of Nestorius was characterized by ignoraiio
!
Lord of Glory, condescended to suffer the elenchi, and could not be regarded as a satis-
death of the cross. If it was true, Cyril factory statement of belief (Cyr. Ep, p. 25 ;
'

238 CYRILLUS CYRILLUS


Mansi, iv. 891). Cyril wrote another letter to 17 Gal. i. i
; Phil. ii. 6
; ; Matt. xi. 28, xvi.
some of his own clergy resident at Constanti- 16, 20 John i. 14, xvii. 3 I. John v. 5 (with-
; ;

nople ;the Nestorian argument from the im- out the words about the " heavenly wit-
passibility of the Godhead he put aside as not nesses "). He laid great stress on the vastness
to the purpose and charged Nestorianism
; of the claim advanced by and for Christ in
with making two Christs and two Sons (Cyr. Scripture, and on the unreasonableness of
Ep. p. 32 Mansi, iv. 1003). This letter re-
; demanding so absolute an obedience if He
"
cognizes the proverbial eloquence of " John were not personally Divine. He asked how
Chrysostom, and expresses the writer's desire the death of a mere man could be of such
for peace, if peace could be had without a importance for the race ? Many a saint had
sacrifice of truth. He disapproved of a draft lived and died, but not one by dying had
petition to the emperor, sent him by these become the saviour of his fellows. He quoted
clerics, as too vehement. In a similar strain nine passages from earlier writers in support
he wrote to a common friend of Nestorius and of the term " Theotokos," or of the doctrine
himself, declaring earnestly that he cared for which it guarded. In bk. ii. he explained
nothing so much as the faith, and desired that texts relied on by Nestorians, including parts
Nestorius might be preserved from the charge of Heb. ii. and Matt, xxvii. 46, Luke ii. 40, 52,
of heresy (Cyr. Ep. p. 31 Mansi, iv. 899). A
; John iv. 22, Mark xii. 32 in the last text
;

long letter " On the Right Faith," which he seeming to recognize, as he does elsewhere
wrote about the same time to the emperor (though sometimes favouring a different view),
Theodosius, contained an elaborate survey of a limitation of knowledge in Christ's manhood,
former heresies, and of the error now spreading analogous to His submission, in His human
in the church (Cyr. tom. v. par. 2 Mansi, ;sphere, to pain and want, and consistent with "'

iv. 617). Cyril's keen-eyed speculative ortho- a perpetual omniscience in His Divine consci-
doxy did not stand coldly apart from all care ousness [ad Regin. ii. 17). In accordance
for practical religion. He felt the vital im- with the emphatic assertion (ii. 7) of the value
portance of his cherished doctrine in its imparted to Christ's death by His Divinity,
bearings on the Christian life he urged in ; the work concludes with " for all our hope is
this treatise that if the Word were not per- in Christ, by Whom
and with Whom.," etc.
sonally incarnate, i.e. if the human Teaclier In these treatises, if some texts are strained
and Sufferer were not really one with the beyond their natural meaning, there is yet a
eternal Son of God, the faith of Christian men remarkable exhibition of acuteness and fer-
would be made void, the work of their salva- tility of thought, pervaded and quickened by
tion annihilated, and the cross lose its virtue. what Dorner calls Cyril's " warm interest "
For the very principle of Christian redemption in Christianity as a religion. Probably c.
lay in this, that it was one and the same Apr. 430 Cyril answered the letter of the
'

Ego' '

Who, possessing, by virtue of His incarnation, Roman bishop, received a year before (Ep.
at once a divine and a human sphere of exist- p. 26) he informed him that the main body
;

ence, could be at once the God of mankind of the faithful of Constantinople (acting on
and the Saviour Who died for them. In the principle fully recognized in the ancient
c. 21 he dwells, in pursuance of this idea, church, that loyalty to the faith was a higher
on the death of Christ as being a full duty than ecclesiastical subordination) were
satisfaction {52pou dXijdCis dvrd^iov). This holding off from the communion of Nestorius,
treatise contains an argument on which Cyril but greatly needed support and countenance ;

was never weary of insisting it was particu- and in very deferential terms asked Celestine
:

larly congenial to the depth and awe, the to say whether any fellowship could be
richness and the tenderness, of his thoughts maintained by orthodox bishops with one
on the great mystery of incorporation into who was disseminating heresy (Mansi, iv.
Christ. From the admitted truth that the ion). With this letter he sent a series of
flesh of Christ was received in the Eucharist passages illustrative of what Nestorius held
as life-giving, he argued that it must be, in a and of what church-writers had taught, trans-
real sense, the flesh of God. In c. 6 of the lated into Latin " as well as Alexandrians
treatise, he says that Nestorians would not could " perform such a task, and to be shewn
have erred by dwelling simply on the differ- by his messenger Posidonius to Celestine, *'/
ence between the natures of "God" and the latter had received anything from Nes-
" flesh " —that difference was undeniable torius. One other letter of Cyril's belongs to
;

but they went on to assert an individual and the summer of 430 he addressed himself to
:

separate being for the man Jesus as apart the aged Acacius, bp. of Berrhoea, who com-
from the Divine Word, and this was the very municated the letter to John, patriarch of
point of their heresy. In c. 27 he rises to Antioch, but informed Cyril that many who
almost Chrysostomic eloquence when he sets had come to Syria, fresh from the preaching
forth the superangelic greatness involved in of Nestorius, were disposed to think him not
the idea of " the Lord of Glory." Another committed to heresy. It is observable that
treatise, in two books, was addressed to the Cyril tells Acacius that some had been led on
princesses, Pulcheria, the gifted sister of the by Nestorianism into an express denial that
feeble emperor, Arcadia, and Marina (Cyr. Christ was God (see Mansi, iv. 1053).
torn. V. par. 2 Mansi, iv. 679 seq.).
; In bk. i. We
now reach a landmark in the story. On
he argued at length from Scripture for the Aug. II, 430, Celestine, having held a synod
oneness and Divinity of Christ, for His position which pronounced Nestorius heretical, gave
as the true object of faith, and for His office Cyril a stringent commission (see this letter in
as life-giver and atoner and among the Mansi, iv. 1017) to " join the authority of the
;

texts he urged were Heb. i. 3, 6, xiii. 8 Tit. Roman see to his own " in warning Nestorius
;

ii. 13 ; I. Cor. ii. 8 ; II. Cor. viii. 9 ; Eph. iii. that unless a written retractation were exe-
— —

CYRILLUS CYRILLUS 239


cuted within ten days, giving assurance of his their name, exhibit some remarkable miscon-
accepting the faith as to " Christ our God," ceptions of Cyril's meaning e.g. they tax him
which was held by the churches of Rome and with denying Christ's flesh to be of real human
Alexandria, he would be excluded from the derivation but they absolutely disclaim the
;

communion of those churches, and " provi- view which would make Jesus merely a pre-
sion " would be made by them for the church eminent saint, and they speak of worship
of Constantinople, i.e. by the appointment of being due to the One Son. Theodoret uses
an orthodox bishop. Had Cyril been as vio- much language which is prima facie Nestorian ;

lent and imperious as he is often said to have his objections are pervaded by an ignoratio
been, he would not have deferred by a single elenchi, and his language is repeatedly illogical
day the carrying out of these instructions. and inconsistent but he and C^'ril were
;

But he took time to assemble, at Alexandria, essentially nearer in belief than, at the time,
a " council of all Egypt," and then, probably they would have admitted (Hooker, v. 53, 4),
on Mon. Nov. 3, 430, wrote his third Letter to for Theodoret virtually owns the personal
Nestorius (£/'. p. 57 Mansi, iv. 1067
;
Routh,
; oneness, and explains the phrase " God as-
Scr. Op. ii. 17), in which he required him to sumed man " by " He assumed manhood."
anathematize his errors, and added a long Both writers speak severely of each other :

dogmatic exposition of the true sense of the Theodoret calls Cyril a wolf, and Cyril treats
Nicene Creed, with a careful disclaimer of all Theodoret as a calumniator. Cyril, in his
confusion between Godhead and manhood. Reply to the Easterns and in his letter to Euop-
To this letter were appended 12 " articles," or tius, earnestly disclaims both forms of Apollin-
" chapters," anathematizing the various arianism —
the notion of a mindless manhood
points of the Nestorian theory— £.g. that in Christ, and the notion of a body formed out
Emmanuel is not really God, and Mary not ofGodhead. The latter, he says, is excluded
Theotokos that the Word was not personally
;
by John i. 14. In the reply (on art. 4) he
"
joined to flesh that there was a " connexion
;
admits " the language appropriate to each
of two persons that Christ is a " God-bearing
; nature." Cyril points out the confusions of
man " that He was a separate individual"
;
thought which had misled Theodoret as to
acted on by the Word, and called " God " " and " Godhead "
God insists that the
;

along with Him that His Flesh was not the


; eternal Son, retaining His divine dignity and
Word's own ;that the Word did not suffer perfections, condescended to assume the limita-
death in the flesh. These propositions were tions of manhood and so (ad Euopt. 4, as in
;

not well calculated to reclaim Nestorius nor


; ad Regin. ii. 17, etc.) explains Mark xii. 32,
were they, indeed, so worded throughout as to and says, with a touch of devotional tender-
approve themselves to all who essentially ness particularly refreshing amid the clash of
agreed with Cyril as to the Personal Deity of polemics, " He wept as man, that He might
Christ, and he was afterwards obliged to put stop thee from weeping. He is said to have
forth explanations of their meaning. Cyril been weak as to His manhood, that He might
wrote two other letters to the clergy, laity, and put an end to thy weakness " (ad Etwpt. 10).
monks of Constantinople, urging them to con- He adhered with characteristic deiiniteness
tend, or praising them for having already to the point really involved — the question
contended, for that faith in Christ's true God- whether Jesus were a human individual (to be
head of which "Theotokos" was the recog- viewed toi/ctDj, as he repeatedly says), or
nized expression (Mansi, iv. 1094). Four whether He were the Divine Son Himself
bishops were sent from Alexandria to bear the appearing in human form and occupying,
synodal documents to Constantinople and without prejudice to His inalienable and pre-
deliver the anathemas to Nestorius in his existent majesty, a human sphere of existence.
palace, after the conclusion of the Eucharistic In the former case, the Son of Mary must be
service, either on Sun. Nov. 30, 430, or Sun. regarded simply as a very highly favoured
Dec. 7. Nestorius met the denunciations of saint, and Christianity loses its distinctive
the Alexandrian synod by enlisting several power and preciousness in the latter case,
;

Eastern bishops in his cause, including John He is a Divine Redeemer, and Christianity is
of Antioch, and Theodoret, who accused Cyril a Gospel worthy of the name. " Let us all
of Apollinarianism by preaching in an ortho-
; acknowledge as Saviour the Word of God, Who
dox strain to his own people, and by framing remained impassible in the nature of the God-
12 anathemas of his own, some of which head, but suffered, as Peter said, in the flesh.
betrayed confusion of thought, while some For, by a true union, that body which tasted
tended directly to confirm the charges against death was His very own. Else, how was
his teaching e.g. he would not allow Em- " Christ from the Jews according to the
manuel to be called Very God. Theodoret, flesh," and " God over all, and blessed for
whose views on the subject were not as yet ever, amen " ? and into Whose death have we
clear or consistent, composed a reply to Cyril. been baptized, and by confessing Whose resur-
Andrew of Samosata, in the name of the rection are we justified ? The death of a
. . .

"Eastern" bishops properly so called, also mere man," etc., " or do we, as is indeed the
entered the against the' great theologian
lists case, proclaim the death of God Who became
of Egypt, who answered both his new antag- man and suffered for us in flesh, and confessing
onists in an Apology for the 12 articles (Mansi, His resurrection, put away the burden of
v. 19), and a Defence of them against Theo- sin ? " (ad Euopt.) To this same period or
doret's objections, the latter addressed to a the preceding year (429) may be assigned
bishop named Euoptius (Mansi, v. 81). These Cyril's five books Against Nestorius. In
treatises threw light on the state of mind to these he comments on passages in Nestorius's
which Cyril's anathemas had seemed so offen- sermons, and by all forms of argument and
sive. The Easterns, or Andrew speaking in illustration sets forth the question really at
240 CYRILLUS CYMLLUS
stake —Had the Divine Son Himself become facts were stated by his secretary ; when Nes-
incarnate, or had He closely allied Himself to torius refused to appear, Cyril's second letter
a man ? to him was read, and at Cyril's request the
We must now return to the events of Nov. bishops pronounced upon its orthodoxy, de-
430. Before the Egyptian deputies could claring it in entire accordance with the faith.
reach Constantinople, Theodosius II. issued His third letter was received merely with a
letters to the metropolitans of his empire, tacit assent, which might be held to extend to
summoning them to meet at Ephesus in the the " articles." (The council professed, after-
Pentecost of 431, with such bishops as each wards, that it had approved Cyril's epistles ;

might select, to hold a general council. This Mansi, iv. 1237.) After evidence as to Nes-
resolution, taken at the instance of Nestorius, torius's opinions and the mind of orthodox
had the effect of suspending all hostile action Fathers had been laid before the council (great
on the part of any individual bishop or pro- stress being doubtless laid on Nestorius's re-
vincial synod. Theodosius, who was pre- cent avowal, " I never will admit that a child
judiced against Cyril, wrote sharply to him, of two or three months old was God," Mansi,
censuring his " meddlesomeness " and " rash- iv. 1 181, 1239), his deposition and excommuni-
ness," and complaining of his having written cation were resolved on by the assembled
separately to the princesses. In compliance bishops ; and Cyril signed the sentence before
with the imperial order, Cyril arrived at his brethren in these words : "I, Cyril, bp. of
Ephesus with 50 bishops, about June 2, 431. Alexandria, sign, giving my judgment together
For the details of the history of the Ephesine with the council."
Council, or third oecumenical synod, see art. When the patriarch of Antioch, with a few
"Ephesus, Councils of," in D. C. A. It is bishops, arrived on June 26 or 27, in vexation
enough here to specify the occasions on which at the course taken by the majority, they hefd
Cyril came prominently forward. A fortnight a "council" or their own, and "deposed"
elapsed before the council was opened Cyril,
: Cyril, and Memnon, bp. of Ephesus, imputing
like other prelates, employed himself in to the former not only Apollinarianism, but
strengthening the cause he had at heart by also the heresy of the ultra-Arian rationalist
earnest addresses. After waiting long for the Eunomius. On the other hand, the council
arrival of John of Antioch and his attendant of Ephesus, now reinforced by the Roman
bishops, Cyril received a cordial letter from his legates, treated Cyril and Celestine as one in
brother patriarch, announcing that he had faith, and proceeded to summon John — Cyril
been travelling incessantly for a month, and being disposed, had not the bp. of Jeru-
hoped to " embrace Cyril " in five or six days salem prevented it, to move for a sentence of
more (Ep. p. 83). There also arrived two deposition on the patriarch of Antioch, after
metropolitans, who bore from him a message the first summons (see Mansi, iv. 1311). Cyril
to the bishops requesting them to proceed repudiated and anathematized the heresies
with business if he were delayed. The ques- imputed to him, and coupled with them the
tion at once arose
— " Should the bishops wait Pelagian errors and those of Nestorius. John
any longer ? " It would have been clearly of Antioch, having disowned the council's
better, even as a matter of policy, to wait a summons, was excommmiicated, with his ad-
few days for John's arrival. The cause of herents. Late in July count John, the im-
orthodoxy could never be aided by its being perial high treasurer, was sent by Theodosius
associated with, to say the least, the appear- to Ephesus, with a letter in which Cyril,
ance of unfairness or impatience. But Cyril Memnon, and Nestorius were treated as
and his suffragans were probably not at all deposed. Accordingly all three were arrested,
desirous of John's presence, for they knew he and guards slept at Cyril's chamber door. His
would be hostile to the Cyrilline articles they : opponents induced Isidore of Pelusium to write
encouraged the idea that he was purposely to him, exhorting him to avoid the bad pre-
loitering from reluctance to join in measures cedents of his uncle's violent conduct, and not
against Nestorius (an idea which appears to to give occasion for the charge of personal
have been unfounded, Evagr. i. 3), and took animosity (Ep. i. 310). Cyril, for his part,
advantage of the fact that other bishops were spoke, in a letter to three of his suffragans then
weary of waiting, the rather that illness, and at Constantinople [Ep. p. 91), of infamous
even death, had occurred among them. So falsehoods circulated against him, but detected
the council was opened on June 22, 431 and ; by count John. He thanked God for having
John's message, which evidently referred to a been counted worthy to suffer, for His Name's
possible delay beyond the six days specified, sake, not only bonds but other indignities.
was unjustifiably quoted to defend a refusal He received from a priest named Alypius a
to wait even that period. In this it is im- letter describing him in glowing terms as an
possible to acquit Cyril of blame and the fault
; imitator of Athanasius. While the two rival
"brought its own punishment in the confusions assemblies of bishops, the council and the
that ensued " (Neale, Hist. Alex. i. 259). " conciliabulum," sent deputies to the court
"
Cyril presided in the assembly not in
; of Theodosius, C)'ril wrote an " Explanation
virtue of the commission from Celestine to act of his " articles," vindicating them against the
in his stead —
which had been already acted charge of a confusion between the Godhead
upon in the Alexandrian council of Nov. 430 and the Manhood, or of teaching inconsistent
— but as the prelate of highest dignity then with the distinct existence of the latter, in the
present, and as holding the proxy and repre- one Divine Person of the Incarnate Lord.
senting the mind of the Roman bishop, until Theodosius finally ordered Cyril and his friends
the Roman legates should arrive (see Tillem. to return home, but abstained from condemn-
xiv. 393). C>Til called on the council to judge ing the " Eastern " bishops, who on their side
between himself and Nestorius the main
: complained of his partiality to their opponentSt
CYRILLUS CYRILLUS 241

On Oct. 30, 431, Cyril returned to Alexandria ;


of the Father according to Godhead, but in the
and shortly afterwards Maximian, a pious and last days Himself the self-same, for us and for
simple-hearted man, who b^' virtue of an our salvation, born of the Virgin Mary accord-
imperial mandate had been consecrated to the ing to Manhood of one essence with the
;

see of Constantinople in the room of Nestorius, Father as to Godhead, of one essence with us
announced his accession to Cyril, who in his as to Manhood. For there took place an union
reply compared him to the faithful Eliakim, of two natures ;wherefore we confess one
invested with the stewardship of Hezekiah's Christ, one Son, one Lord. According to this
household on the deprivation of the unworthy idea of an union without confusion, we confess
Shebna. This letter contained a statement of the Holy Virgin to be Theotokos, because God
orthodox doctrine, and a disclaimer of all the Word was incarnate and made Man, and
ideas of " confusion " or " alteration " in the from His very conception united to Himself
divine nature of the Word [Ep. p. 94 seq. ;
the temple assumed from her." The formu-
Mansi, v. 257 seq.). Cyril next began a lary, although it dwelt more than Cyril had
vindication of his conduct to be laid before the been wont to do on the double aspect of the
emperor (Mansi, v. 225). Theodosius, hoping Incarnation, was accepted by Cyril as repre-
for a reconciliation, endeavoured to arrange senting Paul's own faith, and he placed a
a meeting between John and Cyril at Nico- corresponding statement in the hands of Paul.
media. Cyril was now disposed to moderation, The latter asked whether he would stand by
and resolved to insist only upon the condem- Athanasius's letter to Epictetus. " Certainly ;
"
nation of Nestorius and the recognition of but is your copy of it free of corruption ?
Maximian. The meeting, it was found, could Paul produced his copy Cyril, comparing it
;

not take place ; but a council at Antioch with the authentic text, found that it had been
framed six articles, expressly rejecting those tampered with (Mansi, v. 325). After further
of Cyril, while accepting Athanasius's letter conversation the two bishops agreed to " for-
to Epictetus as an exposition of Nicene get " the troubles of Ephesus. Paul gave
orthodoxy. Cyril's reply shewed that he had Cyril a letter from John, which, though gentle
mastered his tendency to vehement and un- and dignified in tone, referred to the " arti-
yielding self-assertion. He wrote to Acacius cles " in language which annoyed Cyril, and
of Berrhoea, the oldest bp. in Syria, who had he spoke of the letter as "insulting." Paul
forwarded to him the six articles by the hands soothed him with courteous assurances, but
of the " tribune and notary " Aristolaus. Cyril proceeded to the point which John had
Cyril's letter (preserved, in a Lat. version, in —
ignored the recognition of the deposition of
the " Synodicon," Mansi, v. 831) is worth at- Nestorius, and the condemnation of his heresy.
tention : he represented the impossibility of Paul offered to make such a declaration in
withdrawing what he had written against John's name, but Cyril promptly and keenly

Nestorius it would be easy to come to a good insisted that John himself should make it
understanding about the " articles " of the {ib. 313). Just as little could Cyril give way
Alexandrian synod if only the Easterns would as to the four Nestorianizing metropolitans
accept the deposition of Nestorius. " Those deposed by the new archbp. of Constantinople:
who anathematize them will see that the that sentence, he insisted, must stand good
meaning of the articles is directed solely (ib. 349). Paul then, in writing, satisfied Cyril
against his blasphemies." For himself, Cyril as to his own orthodoxy, and Cyril allowed
disavowed and condemned once more the him to join in the church-service of Alex-
heresies imputed to him, and asserted the andria, even inviting him to preach on Christ-
impassibility of the divine nature in Christ, mas Day, 432, in the great church (ib. 293).
while insisting that He, the Only-begotten Son, The bp. of Emesa began with the angelic
Himself " suffered for us in the flesh," accord- hymn, proceeded to the prophecy of Emma-
ing to the words of St. Peter. This letter nuel, and then said, " Thus Mary, Mother of
(referred to by Cyril in subsequent letters, Ep. God, brings forth Emmanuel." A character-
pp. no, 152, 155) opened the way to his re- istic outbreak of orthodox joy interrupted the
concihation with John. The latter, although discourse. The people cried out, " This is the
in his recent council he had bound himself to faith ! 'Tis God's own gift, O orthodox Cyril !

demand a recantation of the Cyrilline articles, This is what we wanted to hear." Paul then
now declared that Cyril had fully cleared went on to say that a combination of two per-
himself from all heretical opinions. After a fect natures, the Godhead and Manhood,
conference with Acacius of Berrhoea, John constituted " for us " the one Son, the one
sent to Alexandria, Paul bp. of Emesa, a man Christ, the one Lord. Again the cry arose,
of experience whom they both could trust, to " Welcome, orthodox bishop " ! Paul re-
confer with Cyril (see Cyril's letters to Acacius sumed his discourse, and explained St. Peter's
and Donatus, Ep. pp. iii, ig6). When Paul confession as implying a duality of nature and
reached Alexandria, Cyril was laid up with ill- an unity of person in Christ. On New Year's
ness (Mansi, v. 987), but, when able, received Day, 433, after alluding to Cyril as a kind-
him, as Paul himself said, kindly and pacifically hearted trainer who had smiled upon his per-
(Mansi, v. 288). They began their conference : formance, he preached at greater length on the
Paul presented to Cyril a confession of faith as unity of the Person and the distinctness of the
exhibiting the mind of John of Antioch [Ep. natures, as being co-ordinate and harmonious
p. 103) ; it had been originally written at truths and his teaching was heartily en-
;

EphesusbyTheodoret (Tillem. xiv. 531). " We dorsed by Cyril, who sent two of his own clergy
confess," so ran this formulary, " our Lord to accompany him and Aristolaus, the em-
Jesus Christ, the Only-begotten Son of God, to peror's secretary, who was very zealous for the
be perfect God and perfect Man, of a reason- reunion, to Antioch, with a paper for John to
able soul and a body, before the ages begotten sign, and a letter of communion to be given

16
242 CYRatUS CYRILLUS
him when he had signed it. But Cyril con- the nature of the Son was hut one, as belonging
'
'

sidered Maximian also languid in the cause, to one, but to One as made man and incar-
and he wrote many letters to persons con- nate." Again, " The nature of the Word is
nected with the imperial court, including the confessedly one, but has become incarnate,"
" Augusta " Pulcheria, to bring their influence for " the Word took the form of a servant,"
to bear upon John and separate him definitely and " in this sense only could a diversity of
and finally from Nestorius (Mansi, v. 988). natures be recognized, for Godhead and Man-
These letters were backed up by presents hood are not the same in natural quality."
euphemistically called " blessings " (eulogiae), Thus, in regard to the Incarnation, " the mind
which were employed by Cyril as a matter of sees two things united without confusion, and
course, for he knew but little of delicacy and nowise regards them, when thus united, as
scrupulosity as to the means to be used in separable, but confesses Him Who is from both,
gaining a court to the church's interests. God, Son, and Christ, to be one." " Two
Cyril also assured Theognostus, Charmosynus, natures," in Nestorius's mouth, meant two
and Leontius, his " apocrisiarii " or church natures existing separately, in One Who was
agents at Constantinople {Ep. p. 152) that this God and in One Who was Man John of ;

peace with John implied no retractation of his Antioch and his brethren, while admitting that
old principles. In the spring of 433 John Godhead and Manhood in Christ might be
of Antioch wrote to Cyril, reciting the formu- regarded as intrinsically different, yet un-
lary of reunion, abandoning Nestorius, and equivocally acknowledged His Person to be
condemning Nestorianism (Mansi, v. 290). In one. The phrase " one incarnate nature "
another letter John entreated Cyril in a tone of God the Word, or " one nature, but that
of warm friendship to believe that he was incarnate," had been already (ad Regin. i. gT
" the same that he had known in former quoted by Cyril as Athanasian :although it
days" (Ep. p. 154). On Apr. 23 (Pharmuthi is very doubtful whether the short tract On
8) Cyril announced this reconciliation in a the Incarnation of God the Word, in which it
sermon (Mansi, v. 310, 289), and began his is found, was really written by Athanasius.
reply to John, " Let the heavens rejoice and But, as now used by Cyril in his vindication
the earth be glad " (Ep. p. 104 Mansi, v.
; of the formulary from Nestorianism, it became
301). In this letter (afterwards approved by in after-days a stumbling-block, and was quoted
the council of Chalcedon) he cited the text, in support of Monophysitism (Hooker, v. 52,
" One Lord, one faith, one baptism," as ex- 4). Did, then, Cyril in fact hold what was
pressing the happiness of the restored peace ;
condemned in 451 by the council of Chalce-
and added his usual disclaimers of all opinions don ? Would he have denied the distinct
inconsistent with the reality of Christ's man- co-existence of Godhead and Manhood in the
hood. He commented on John iii. 13, I. Cor. one incarnate Saviour ? Were the Fathers of
XV. 47, I. Pet. iv. I. He also sent to John a Chalcedon wrong when they proclaimed Cwil
copy of the genuine text of Athanasius's and Leo to be essentially one in faith ? What
letter to Epictetus. John himself became has been already quoted from the letter to
an object of suspicion and animosity to the Acacius of Melitene seems to warrant a nega-
thoroughgoing Nestorians and even Theo-
; tive answer to these questions. What Cyril
doret, though he admitted that Cyril's recent meant by " one nature incarnate " was simply,
language was orthodox, would not abandon " Christ is one." He was referring to " nature "
Nestorius's cause. In another direction as existing in Christ's single Divine Personality
doubts and anxieties were excited by the (cf. adv. Nest. ii.
; cf. note in Athan. Treatises,
language now sanctioned by Cyril. Isidore, Lib. Fath. i. 155). When he denounced the
to whom Cyril had always allowed great free- idea of the separation of the natures after the
dom of admonitory speech, and who had union, he was in fact denouncing the idea of
blamed him for unyieldingness, now expressed a mere connexion or association between a
a fear that he had made too great concessions human individual Jesus and the Divine Word.
(Ep. i. 324). Other friends of his were scan- Therefore, when he maintained the nature to
dalized by his acceptance of the phrase "two be one, he was speaking in a sense quite dis-
natures." Was not this, they began to ask, tinct from the Eutychian heresy, and quite
equivalent to a sanction of Nestorianism ? consistent with the theology of Chalcedon.
To vindicate his orthodoxy herein, Cyril wrote Other letters, written by Cyril under the same
a long letter to Acacius of MeUtene (Ep. p. circumstances, throw light on his true mean-
109 ;
Mansi, v. 309), who had signified to him ing. Successus, an Isaurian bishop, had
"
that some disquietude was felt. He narrated asked him whether the phrase " two natures
the recent transactions and after insisting
; were admissible (Ep. p. 135 ;
Mansi, v. 999).
ihut the formulary was not (as some had re- Cyril wrote two letters to him in reply. In
presented it) a new creed, but simply a state- the first, after strongly asserting the unity of
ment called forth by emergency
a special (as the Son both before and since the Incarnation,
those who signed it had been accused of he quoted the " one nature incarnate " as
rejecting the Nicene faith, and were therefore a phrase of the Fathers, and employed the
constrained to clear themselves), he proceeded illustration from soul and body, " two na-
to exhibit the essential difference between the tures " being united in one man in order to
formulary and the Nestorian error. Nestor- set forth the combination of Godhead and
ius, in fact, asserted two Christs the formu-
: Manhood in one Christ (cf. his Scholia de Inc.
lary confessed one, both divine and human. 8). There was, he added, neither a conversion
Then Cyril added that the two natures spoken of Godhead into flesh nor a change of flesh
of in the formulary were indeed separate in into Godhead. In other words, Christ's body,
mental conception, i.e. considered apart from though glorified, and existing as God's body,
Christ, but that " after their union " in Christ was not deprived of its human reality. In the
CYRILLUS CYRILLUS 243

second letter, replying to objections made by demned merely denying the " Theotokos "
for
Successus to statements in the first, Cyril fully (Mansi, v. 996, cf. ib. 970). He urged that the
admitted that Christ " arrayed Himself with bishops should anathematize Nestorianism
our nature," so that in Him both Godhead and in detail. John wished no new test to be
Manhood, in Christ, retained their natural imposed and Cyril found he had gone too
;

distinctness (cf. p. 143), and that the human far [ib. 969, 972, 996). John was much
nature was neither diminished nor subtracted. annoyed at Theodoret's pertinacious refusal to
Further on he repeated the phrase " one —
anathematize Nestorius a refusal in which
nature, but that incarnate," in the sense (as Theodoret persisted until the eighth session of
the context shews; of " One Who in His original the council of Chalcedon (ib. 997). As the
nature was God, by incarnation becoming Nestorianizers professed entire adhesion to the
man." In another letter he gave, to a priest Nicene Creed, Cyril drew up an exposition
named Eulogius, a similar account of the of it (Ep. p. 17.1, Mansi, v. 383, cf. ib. 975)
phrase, and obviously viewed it as guarding addressed to certain "fathers of monks," in
the truth of the Personal Union (Ep. p. 133). which he urged the incompatibility of that
In another, addressed to a bishop named " venerable and oecumenical symbol of faith "
Valerian (and remarkable for the emphasis with the denial of the personal unity of the
with which the Divinitv of Christ is exhibited Saviour. In this tract, a copy of which he
as bearing on His Atonement), the word sent to Theodosius, he disclaimed, as usual,
" nature," in this connexion, is evidently used any " fusion, commixture, or so-called con-
as synonymous with " person " or hypostasis ;
substantiation " ((yvvov(r'i.ii}(Ti.v) of the Godhead
and as if specially anxious to exclude all possible with the flesh. He drew up a short treatise in
misconception, he wrote " He, being by nature
: three books to prove that Mary was Theotokos,
God, became flesh, that is, perfect man. . . . that Christ was one and not two, and that
As man He was partaker of our nature." while He was impassible as God, He suffered
This language agrees with that of his 17th for us mflesh that was His own. This he
Paschal Homih' (Cyr. v. ii. 226). Cf. also his intended as an antidote to the Nestorian argu-
statement in adv. Nest. ii. t. vi. 50, that while ments which, as he learned, were rife in Syria
the divine and the human natures are different (Mansi, v. 995). The name of Theodore of
things, as all right-thinking men must know, Mopsuestia was at this time a watchword of
yet after the Incarnation they must not be eager controversy. Proclus of Constantinople,
divided, for there is but one Christ. Again in his " Tome " addressed to the Armenian
(ih. p. 45) that Christ is not twofold is explained clergy, in which he spoke of " one incarnate
by the context to mean that Christ before and person" (not "nature") of God the Word,
since the Incarnation is one and the same had condemned Theodore's opinions without
Person ; and {ib. p. 48). the reason for calling naming him (ib. 421) the messengers who
:

Christ's Godhead the <t>vcns is explained by the carried this document to John of Antioch in-
consideration that He was originally God, serted Theodore's name, without authority
while in the fifth book (ib. p. 139) He is said from Proclus, as the author of certain passages
to have given up His body to the laws of its selected for censure. John and his suffragans
own nature (ttjs iStas (pvaeias). In the ninth accepted the Tome, but declined to condemn
book, de S. Trinitate (dial, quod unus est Theodore by name. Proclus rejoined that he
Christus), he denies all transmutation or con- had never wished them to go beyond a con-
fusion of the natures, asserts the distinctness of demnation of the extracts. Cyril, so far from
Godhead and Manhood, adding that "the bush feeling any tenderness towards Theodore,
burning yet unronsumed was a type of the non- traced Nestorianism to his teaching and to
consumption of the Manhood of Christ in its that of Diodore of Tarsus (ib. 974) and wrote
contact with His Divinity " (cf. Scholia, 2, 9). vigorously in support of this thesis (ib. 992).
To return to the history. Maximian, dying A synodal letter from John and his suffragans,
in Apr. 434, was succeeded by Proclus, whose stating their objections to Theodore's name
glowing sermon on the Incarnation had been being anathematized on the score of expres-
among the earliest expressions of orthodox zeal sions which, they urged, could be taken in a
against the Nestorian theory, and who de- sense accordant with the language of eminent
serves to be remembered as a very signal Fathers, drew forth from Cyril a somewhat in-
example of the compatibility of orthodox zeal dignant reply. Theodore, lie said (Ep. p. 195),
with charitable tenderness (Socr. vii. 41). had " borne down full sail against the glory of
Soon after his accession the imperial court Christ " it was intolerable that any parallel
;

resolved to enforce on all Eastern bishops should be drawn between his language and
the acceptance of the concordat which had that of Athanasius or Basil he insisted that
:

reconciled John of Antioch with Cyril, upon no one should be allowed to preach Theodore's
pain of expulsion from their dioceses. The opinions but he did not urge any condem-
;

Nestorians, on their side, were indefatigable nation of his memory, and even dwelt on tlie
in circulating the works of Theodore of Mop- duty of welcoming all converts from Nestor-
suestia, who had formed the theological mind ianism without a word of reproach as to the
of Nestorius and Cyril, who was informed of
; past. He saw that it would be imprudent to
this during a visit to Jerusalem, was stirred to proceed publicly against the memory of a
new energy by the evident vitahty of the theologian so highly esteemed that the people
theory which he so earnestly abhorred. He cried out in some Eastern churches, "We be-
wrote to the "tribune" Aristolaus, and to lieve as Theodore did," and would rather be
John of Antioch, complaining that, as he was " burnt " than disown him and he wrote to
;

mformed, some bishops were repudiating Proclus advisingthat no further stepsshould be


Nestorianism insincerely or inadequately, and taken in the matter (Ep. p. 199). The remain-
were declaring that its author had been con- ing events of Cyril's long episcopate may be
,

244 CYRILLUS CYRILLUS


told briefly. Rewrote to Domnus, the successor to be moderate and patient. " We may,"
of John in the see of Antioch (and afterwards says Dr. Newman {Hist. Sketches, iii. 342),
unhappily conspicuous in the Eutychian con- " hold St. Cyril a great servant of God, without
troversy) in behalf of Athanasius sometime bp. considering ourselves obliged to defend certain
,

of Perrha, who described himself, falsely it passages of his ecclesiastical career. . Cyril's
. .

appears, as sorely wronged by some of his own faults were not inconsistent with great and
clergy {Ep. p. 208). In another letter to Dom- heroic virtues, faith, firmness, intrepidity,
nus, peremptory in style, he took up the cause fortitude, endurance, perseverance." Those
of another aged bishop named Peter, who who begin by condemning dogmatic zeal as a
professed to have been expelled and plundered fierce and misplaced chivalry for a phantom,
of his property on the pretext of a renunciation will find it most difficult to be just to a man
of his see, which after all had been extorted like Cyril. But if his point of view, which was
from him {Ep. p. 209). In both these cases indeed that of many great religious heroes, and
Cyril shewed a somewhat impulsive readiness eminently of Athanasius, be fully understood
to believe the story of a petitioner, and a some- and appreciated, it ought not to be difficult to
what dictatorial temper in regard to the affairs do justice to his memory. The issue raised
of another patriarchate. He wrote also a by Nestorianism was to Cyril a very plain one,
work against the Anthropomorphites, whose involving the very essence of Apostolic
wild fancies about the Divine nature (as being Christianity. Whatever ambiguities might be
limited and corporeal) had given such trouble raised by a Nestorian use of the word Trpdawwov,
in the days of his predecessor ; and in a letter it was clear to Cyril that the new theory
on this subject to Calosirius, bp. of Arsinoe, amounted to a denial of the Word Incarnat«,^
he added a caution against the false mysticism Nor was it a mere theory of the schools. Its
which insisted on prayer to the exclusion of all promulgator held the great see of the Eastern
labour, and on the " senseless " opinion that capital, involving a central position and strong
the Eucharistic consecration lost its efficacy court influence, and was no mere amiable
if the sacrament was reserved until the follow- dreamer or scholastic pedant, whose fancies
ing day. " Christ's holy Body," wrote Cyril, might die away if left to themselves. He has
" is not changed ; but the power of consecra- in modern times been spoken of as " the
tion and the life-giving grace still remain in it " blameless Nestorius " he was in his own
:

{Op. vi. 365). In the last year of his life he times spoken of as " the incendiary " on ac-
wrote to Leo, then bp. of Rome (to whom, as count of a zeal against other forms of heresy
archdeacon of Rome, he had written in 431 which impelled him to take strong measures
against the ambitious schemes, as he regarded against opponents of his own. This was the
them, of Juvenal bp. of Jerusalem [Leon. Ep. enemy against whom Cyril did battle for the
119, 4]) on the right calculation of Easter for doctrine of a real Incarnation and a really
A.D. 444, which, according to the Alexandrian Divine Christ. He had to reckon on opposi-
cycle of 19 years, he fixed for April 23. In tion, not only from Nestorius himself, but from
444, on June 9 or 27, his eventful life ended. large numbers— a miscellaneous company,
Cyril's character is not, of course, to be including civil functionaries as well as prelates
judged by the coarse and ferocious invective — who accepted the Nestorian theology, or
against his memory, quoted as Theodoret's in who thought strong language against it un-
the fifth general council (Theod. Ep. 180 see
; called-for and offensive. He might have to
Tillem. xiv. 784). If this were indeed the encounter the displeasure of an absolute
production of Theodoret, the reputation to —
government he certainly had for some time
suffer would assuredly be that writer's. What the prospect of that displeasure, and of all its
Cyril was, in his strength and in his weak- consequences he had the burden of ill-health,
— ;

ness in his high-souled struggle for doctrines of ever-present intense anxiety, of roughly
which were to him, as to all thoughtful expressed censure, of reiterated imputations
believers in Christ's Divinity, the expres- affecting his own orthodoxy, of misconcep-
sions of essential Christian belief ; or in the tions and suspicions which hardly left him a
moments when his old faults of vehemence and moment's rest. Whatever faults there were

impatience reappeared in his conduct we in his conduct of the controversy, this at least

have already seen. He started in public life, must be said not only by mere eulogists of a
so to speak, with dangerous tendencies to canonized saint, but by those who care for the

vehemence and imperiousness which were truth of history that the thought as well as
fostered by the bad traditions of his uncle's the heart of Christendom has for ages accept-
episcopate and by the ample powers of his see. ed, as the expression of Christian truth, the
It would be impossible to maintain that these principle upheld by Cyril against Nestorius.
evils were wholly exhausted by the grave A real and profound question divided the
errors which — exaggerations and false impu- disputants and that stanza of Charles Wes-
tations set aside — ;

distinguished his conduct in ley's Christmas hymn which begins,


the feud with the Jews and with Orestes ;

when, although guiltless of the blood of Hy- " Christ, by highest heaven adored,"
patia, he must have felt that his previous
violence had been taken as an encouragement conveys the Cyrilline or Ephesine answer to that
by her fanatical murderers. The old impa- question in a form which exhibits its close con-
tience and absolutism were all too prominent nexion with the deepest exigencies of spiritual
at certain points of the Nestorian struggle ;
life. Cyril, as a theological writer, has greater
although on other occasions, as must be ad- merits than are sometimes allowed by writers
mitted by all fair judges, influences of a soften- defective in a spirit ot equity. His style,
ing and chastening character had abated the as Cave admits, may be deficient in elegance
turbid impetus of his zeal and had taught him and in eloquence he may be often tedious
;

CYRILLUS DALMATIUS 245

and sometimes obscure, although, as Photius from the heresy attributed to him. See also
says (Cod. 136), his Thesaurus is remarkable Christology, in D. C. B. (4-vol. ed.). [vv.b.]
for its lucidity. His comments on Scripture Cyrillus (13) of Scythopolis (Bethshan), so
may be charged with excessive mysticism, or called from his birthplace, a hagiologist, fl. c.

with a perpetual tendency to bring forward 555. His father, John, was famous for his re-
his favourite theological idea. There may be ligious life. Cyril commenced an ascetic career
weak points in his argument e.g. undue at the age of 16. On leaving his monastery to
pressing of texts, and fallacious inferences, visit Jerusalem and the holy places, his mother
several of which might be cited from the bid him put himself under the instruction of
treatise To the Princesses. But any one who John the Silentiary, by whom he was com-
consults, e.g., the Thesaurus, will acknowledge mended to Leontius, abbat of the monastery of
the ability with which Cyril follows up the St. Euthymius, who admitted him as a monk
theological line of Athanasius (see pp. 12, 23, in 522. Thence Cyril passed to the Laura of St.
27, 30, 50), and applies the Athanasian mode Saba, where he commenced his sacred bio-
of thought to the treatment of Eunomian graphies with the Lives of St. Euthymius and
rationalism (p. 263), and the vividness with St. Saba, deriving his information from the
which, in this and in other works, he brings elder monks who had known those saints. He
out the Catholic interpretation of cardinal also wrote the Life of St. John the Silentiary
texts in N.T. His acquaintance with Greek and other biographies, affording a valuable
literature and philosophy is evident from picture of the inner life of the Eastern church
the work against Julian ;but he speaks quite in the 6th cent. They have been unfortunate-
in the tone of Hippolytus's "Little Laby- ly largely interpolated by Metaphrastes. The
rinth" (Eus. V. 28) when he deprecates an following biographies are attributed to Cyril
undue reliance on Aristotelian dialectics and by Fabricius (Bibl. Graec. lib. v. c. 41, x. 155):
a priori assumption on mysteries transcend- (i) S. Joannes Silentiarius (ap. Surium, May
ing human thought [Thesaur. 87, de recta 13) ;(2) S. Euthymius (Cotelerius, Feci.
fide 1 5, 17). Graec. Monum. ii. 200) (3) S. Sahas. (ib. iii.
;

Fragments of Cinrilline treatises not other- 220); (4) Theodosius the Archimandrite (only
wise extant are preserved in synodal acts and found in Latin, of doubtful authenticity^ (5) ;

elsewhere, and other works, as his Paschal Cyriacus the Anchoret; (6) S. Theognius the
Cycles and The Failure of the Synagogue, are .Ascetic, hp. of Cyprus (Fabric. Bibl. Grace.
mentioned by Sigebert and Gennadius. The U.S.; Cave, Hist. Lit. p. i. 52g). [e.v.]
Monophysites used on festivals a " Liturgy of
St. Cyril,"which is substantially identical with
the Gk. " Liturgy of St. Mark " (see Palmer's
Orig. Liturg. i. 86, and Neale's Inirod. East.
Ch. i. 324), and their traditionary belief, ex- Dalmatius (4), monk and abbat, near Con-
pressed in a passage cited from Abu'lberkat stantinople at the time of the council of
by Renaudot, Lit. Orient, i. 171, is that Cyril Ephesus (a.d. 431). His influence arose from
" completed " St. Mark's Liturgy. " It his eminent piety, strength of character, and
seems highly probable," says Dr. Neale, fiery zeal. Under Theodosius the Great he had
quoting this, " that the liturgy of St. Mark served in the 2nd company of Guards, married,
came, as we have it now, from the hands of St. had children, and led a virtuous life. Feeling
Cyril" ; although, as Palmer says, the ortho- a call to a monastic life, he left his wife and
dox Alexandrians preferred to call it by the children, except a son Faustus, and went to be
name of the Evangelist founder of their see. instructed by abbat Isaac, who had dwelt in
The Coptic Cyrilline Liturgy is of somewhat the desert since his infancy. Isaac at his death
later date, and more diffuse in character. It made him Hegumenus, superior of the monas-
seems not improbable that the majestic in- tery, under the patriarch Atticus. Consulted
vocation of the Holy Spirit which is one of the by councils, patriarchs, and emperors, he re-
distinctive ornaments of St. Mark's Liturgy, mained in his cell 48 years without quitting
if it was not composed during the Macedonian it. He is sometimes addressed as chief of
controversy in the 4th cent., represents to us the monasteries of Constantinople but it is;

the lively zeal of the great upholder of the uncertain whether this was a complimentary
Hypostatic Union for the essential Divinity or official title. He is not to be confounded
of the Third Person in the Godhead. with Dalmatius, monk at Constantinople, bp.
Cyril's works were well edited by John of Cyzicus ; because the latter was present at
Aubert (1658) in six volumes, an edition not the council of Ephesus in that capacity.
yet superseded ; there is no Benedictine St. During the supremacy of the Nestorian
Cyril. In 1859 Dr. Payne Smith pub. Cyril's party at Ephesus, letters were conveyed by a
Commentary on St. Luke's Gospel, trans, from beggar in the hollow of a cane from C)ril and
a Syriac version. An elaborate edition by the Athanasian or Catholic bishops to the
P. E. Pusey, M.A., of Christ Church, of the emperor Theodosius II., the clergy and people
Commentary on the Minor Prophets (2 vols.) at Constantinople complaining that they had
and the Commentary on S. John's Gospel been imprisoned three months, that the Nes-
(3 vols.) is pub. by the Clarendon Press, as is torians had deposed C}Til and Memnon bp. of
also the text and trans, with Lat. notes of Ephesus, and that they were all in the greatest
the Comm. in Luc. ed. by R. P. Smith. An distress. A short memorial was added to the
important work has recently been published letter of the bishops, probably for Dalmatius.
by Dr. Bethune Baker, of Cambridge, entitled Dalmatius was greatly moved, and believed
Nestorius and his Teaching, a Fresh Examina- himself summoned to go forth at length from
tion of the Evidence, which adduces much, from his retreat in the interests of truth. Accom-
new discoveries, in vindication of Nestorius panied by the monks of all the monasteries,
a

246 DAM ASUS DANIEL


led bytheir abbats, he went to the palace in aid of his learning. J erome's desire to dedicate
a long procession, divided into two companies, to him a translation of Didymus's work on the
and singing alternately a vast crowd of
; Holy Ghost was only stopped by his death. In
sympathizers followed. The abbats were later letters Jerome speaks in high terms of
admitted to the emperor's presence and the
; Damasus calls him " that illustrious man,
;

monks remained outside chanting. Return- that virgin doctor of the virgin church,"
ing to the people, the abbats asked them to go " eager to catch the first sound of the preach-
to the church of St. Mocius to hear the letter ing of continence " ;who " wrote both verse
of the council and the emperor's reply. They and prose in favour of virginity " [Epp.
went through the city, the monks chanting Hieron. 22, 48). From this Milman {Latin
and carrying wax tapers. Great enthusiasm Christ, i. 69) conjectures that Damasus was
was excited against Nestorius. At the a patron of the growing monastic party —
church the abbats read the letter of the not improbable conjecture, rendered more
bishops, which produced high excitement. likely by the ardent attachment of Jerome,
Dalmatius, who was a presbyter, then mount- and the veneration in which the memory of
ed the pulpit, begged them to be patient, and pope Damasus was held by later times, when
in temperate and modest terms related his monasticism had taken firm root in the
conversation with the emperor, and its satis- Roman church. But the best-known record of
factory result. The emperor then wrote to Damasus will always be his labour of love in
Ephesus, ordering a deputation of each party the catacombs of Rome. Here he searched
to arrive at Constantinople. In a letter to ardently and devotedly for the tombs of the
Dalmatius the council acknowledged that to martyrs, which had been blocked up and
him only was owing the emperor's knowledge hidden by the Christians during the last per-^
of the truth. Cyril, Ep. 23, etc., Pair. Gk. secution. He " removed the earth, widened^
Ixxvii. Concil. Gen. i. Dalmatii Apol. p. 477
; ;
; the passages, so as to make them more service-
St. Procl. CP. Episc. Ep. iii. Pair. Gk. Ixv.
; able for the crowd of pilgrims, constructed
p. 876, Ixxxv. col. 1797-1802 Ceillier, viii. 290,
; flights of stairs leading to the more illustrious
395. 396, 407, 594 Fleury, bk. xxvi.
;
[w.m.s.] shrines, and adorned the chambers with
DamasUS, pope, said to have been a Span- marbles, opening shafts to admit air and light
iard, the son of Antonius. On the death of where practicable, and supporting the friable
Liberius (Sept. a.d. 366) the factions which tufa walls and galleries wherever it was neces-
had disgraced his election broke out with re- sary with arches of brick and stone work.
doubled violence. The original root of bitter- Almost all the catacombs bear traces of his
ness had been Arianism ; and Felix the Arian labours, and modern discovery is continually
antipope [Felix II.] had been expelled by bringing to light fragments of the inscriptions
Liberius. Seven days after the death of which he composed in honour of the martyrs,
Liberius, Felix's partisans met and proclaimed and caused to be engraved on marble slabs, in
Damasus pope in the Lucina [qy. the crypt of a peculiarly beautiful character, by a very able
St. Lucina in the catacomb of Callistus ?]. artist, F"urius Dionysius Filocalus. It is a
Damasus had previously taken up a middle singular fact that no original inscription of
position between the contending parties, which pope Damasus has ever yet been found exe-
may have specially recommended him to the cuted by any other hand nor have any in-
;

electors, who could not hope to carry an ex- scriptionsbeen found, excepting those of
treme man. Yet, about the same time appar- Damasus, in precisely the same form of letters.
ently the party of Liberius met in the Julian Hence the type is well known to students of
basilica and elected Ursicinus or Ursinus. Christian epigraphy as the Damasine char-
'

It is difficult to ascertain the truth with acter " (Roma Sotterranea, by Northcote and
'

regard to the strife between the rival popes. Brownlow, p. 97). Damasus also laid down
Our most detailed account is by personal a marble pavement in the basilica of St.
enemies of Damasus, and the incidents of the Sebastian, recording by an inscription the
struggle are recorded under Ursinus. temporarv burial in that church of SS. Peter
Damasus used his success well, and the and Paul (i&. p. 114). He built the baptistery
chair of St. Peter, even if, as his enemies at the Vatican in honour of St. Peter, where
alleged, acquired by violent means, was never de Rossi thinks, from an inscription in the
more respected nor vigorous than during his Damasine character, was an actual chair which
bishopric. He appears as a principal oppo- went by the name of St. Peter's seat {ib. p.
nent of Arian and other heretics. Bp. Peter of 393), and he drained the crypts of the Vatican,
Alexandria was his firm friend all along and
; that the bodies buried there might not be
was associated with him in the condemnation disturbed by the overflow of water (ib. p. 334).
of Apollinaris (Soz. vi. 25), and in affixing the He died in Dec. 384, after a pontificate of 18
stigma of Arianism to Meletius of Antioch and years. Before his death he had prepared his
Eusebius, who were upheld by Basil (Basil, own tomb above the catacomb of Callistus,
Ep. cclxvi. iii. 597, ed. Bened.). On Meletius's giving his reason in an inscription in what is
death Damasus struggled hard to gain the called the Papal crypt of that catacomb :

chair of Antioch for Paulinus, and to exclude " Hie fateor Damasus volui mea condcre membra,
Flavian us nor was he reconciled to the latter "
;
Sed timui sanctos cineres vexare priorum.
till some time later (Socr. v. 15).
His correspondence with Jerome, his at- {ib. p. 102). Cf. Hefele, Conciliengeschichte,
tached friend and secretary, begins a.d. 376, vols. i. and ii. [g.h.m.]
and closes only with his death a.d. 384. Six Damianus (2), M. [Cosmas.]
of Jerome's letters to him are preserved, two Daniel (9) the Stylite, of the 5th cent., was a
being expositions of difficult passages of Scrip- Mesopotamian by birth, and in his youth had
ture elicited by letters of Damasus asking the visited Symeon the Stylite. After having
; —

DATIVUS DAVID 247


lived a monastic life in convents for several the interior of his breast could be seen. He
years, at the age of 47 he received as a legacy went on praying and begging Jesus Christ for
the cowl of Symeon, and established his pillar patience. The proconsul, stopping the tor-
4 miles N. of Constantinople. The patriarch ture, asked him again if he had been present.
Gennadius ordained him presbyter against his " I was in the assembly," he answered, " and
will, standing at the foot of his column. Then celebrated the Lord's Supper with the breth-
the patriarch, by means of a ladder, adminis- ren." They again thrust the irons into his
tered the Eucharist, and received it in turn side ;and Dativus, repeating his prayer,
from the Stylite. He lived on his pillar for continued to say, " O Christ, I pray Thee let
33 years, and died at the age of 80. He was me not be confounded." And he added,
visited with reverence by kings and emperors " What have I done ? Saturninus is our
as an oracle ; but discouraged all who brought presbyter." Dativus was carried to gaol. Here
complaints against their bishops. Towards he soon afterwards died. Many of his com-
the end of his life, solicited eagerly by both panions were also tortured, and most of them
sides, he took part in the dispute between the were starved to death in prison. Ruinart,
emperor Basiliscus, a Monophysite, and Aca- Acta Sine. Marf. p. 382; Ceillier, iii. 20, etc.;
cius patriarch of Constantinople. Descending AA. SS. Bolland. Feb. ii. p. 513. [vv.m.s.]
from his pillar, he appeared in the city, de- David (5), St. {Degui Welsh, Dewi), the
;

nounced Basiliscus, and inflamed the people most eminent Welsh saint.
with such zeal that Basiliscus published an —
His Period. The Annates Cambriae, our
orthodox edict. The following is his prayer earliest authority for his existence, date his
before he began his life on the pillar " I yield
: death a.d. 601 and one reading, which the
;

Thee glory, Jesus Christ my God, for all the Moniimenta only gives in brackets, under a.d.
blessings which Thou hast heaped upon me, 458, is :
" St.
bewi nascitur anno tricesimo
and for the grace which Thou hast given me post discessum Patricii de Menevia " (M. H. B.
that I should embrace this manner of life. 830, 831). Geoffrey of Monmouth dates his
But Thou knowest that in ascending this death a.d. 542, and William of Malmesbury
pillar I lean on thee alone, and that to Thee A.D. 546. Ussher argues that he died a.d. 544,
alone I look for the happy issue of mine under- at the age of 82 (Brit. Eccl. Ant. Works, 1847 ;

taking. Accept, then, my object ; strengthen vi. 43, 44, Chron. Index, ad ann. 544) ;but
me that I finish this painful course give me;
Rice Rees, who has followed him in his com-
grace to end it in holiness." In his last will putations, places his birth 20 years later, and
to his disciples, after commending them to the fixes A.D. 366 as the last date possible for his
common Father of all, and to the Saviour Who death. The a.d. 601 of the Ann. Carnb. is the
died for them, Daniel bade them " hold fast date adopted by Haddan and Stubbs (Coun-
humility, practise obedience, exercise hospital- cils, i. 121, 143, 148), who remark that David
ity, keep the fasts, observe the vigils, love would thus come into view just as the history
poverty, and above all maintain charity, of Wales emerges from the darkness that
which is the first and great commandment conceals it for a century after the departure
avoid the tares of the heretics separate never
;
of the Romans.
from the church your mother if you do these
: A resume of authorities for his Life is given
things your righteousness shall be perfect." by Jones and Freeman (Hist, of St. David's,
Baronius places his death in a.d. 489. Vita 240), and a full and careful list of all known
S. Daniel, ap. Surium, ad diem ii. decemb. cap. materials, manuscript and printed, by Hardy
xli. xlii. xliii. Robertson, Ch. Hist. ii. 41-43, (Descr. Catal. i. 766).
274
;

Ceillier, x. 344, 403, 485.


; Baronius, ed. —
The Story of his Life. The asserted facts of
Theiner, vol. viii. ad an. 460, § 20 464, § 2
; ;
St. David's life, omitting such as are clearly
465, § 3, 12, 13; 476, § 48, 50, 51, 53; 489, legendary, meet with various degrees of cre-
§ 4. [W.M.S.] dence from authors of repute. Rees, in his
DatiVUS (3), celebrated senator, martyred Essay on Welsh Saints, while rejecting several
under Diocletian Feb. 11, a.d. 304. In spite circumstances as manifestly fabulous or in-
of orders to the contrary, a company of the credible, such as his going to Jerusalem to be
faithful met in the town of Abitina, in the consecrated, is disposed to accept enough to
proconsulate of Africa, to celebrate Christian make a biographical narrative.
worship and communion, at the house of one His father was (in medieval Latin) Xantus
Felix Octavius. Forty-nine men and women or Sanctus, prince of Keretica i.e. modern

were surprised by the official and magistrates Cardiganshire. David is said to have been
of the town. They marched cheerfully to educated first under St. Iltutus in his college
their destination, chanting hymns and can- (afterwards called from him Llanilltyd Fawr,
ticles, having at their head Dativus the sena- or Lanwit Major), and subsequently in the
tor and Saturninus the presbyter. They college of Paulinus (a pupil of Germanus and
confessed Jesus Christ, were chained, and sent one of the great teachers of the age), at Ty-
to Carthage. There the proconsul Anulinus gwyn ar Daf (Rees, Welsh Saints, 178), or at
examined them. Dativus, refusing to say Whitland in Carmarthenshire (Jones and
who was the chief of their company, was tor- Freeman) and here he spent ten years in the
;

tured. As he lay under the iron, at a second study of Holy Scripture. In course of time
examination, Dativus was accused by For- David became head of a society of his own,
tunatianus, advocate, brother of the martyr founding or restoring a monastery or college
Victoria, one of the arrested, of enticing her at a spot which Giraldus calls VaUis Rosina
and other young girls to Abitina. Victoria, (derived, as is generally supposed, from a con-
however, indignantly denied that she had fusion between Rhos. a swamp, and Rhosyn, a
gone there but of her own accord. The exe- rose), near Hen-Meneu, and this institution
cutioners continued tormenting Dativus, till was subsequently named, out of respect to his
248 DAVID DECIUS
memory, Ty Dewl, House of David, or St. as indicating the limits of the diocese of arch-
David's. In those days, remarks Rees, abbats bp. David's immediate jurisdiction [ib. pp.
of monasteries were looked upon in their own 197-ioq). David's successor was Cynog.
neighbourhoods as bishops, and were styled Jones and Freeman (St. David's, 246 seq.)
such, while it is probable that they also exer- conclude that we may safely accept as his-
cisedchorepiscopal rights in their societies torical facts that St. David established a see
:

{Welsh Samts, 182, 266; cf. Haddan and and monastery at Menevia early in the 7th
Stubbs, i. 142, 143). Such dignity David cent., the site being chosen for the sake of
enjoyed before his elevation to the arch- retirement ; that his diocese was co-extensive
bishopric of the Cambrian church. It was with the Demetae that he had no archiepis-
;

the Pelagian controversy that occasioned his copal jurisdiction that a synod was held at
;

advancement. To pronounce upon the great Brefi, in which he probably played a conspic-
heresy then troubling the church, archbp. uous part, but that its objects are unknown ;

Dubricius convened a synod at Breli, and and finally that of his immediate successors
David, whose eloquence put the troublers to nothing is recorded [ib. 257). These writers
confusion, made such an impression that the convey a vivid impression of the " strange and
synod at once elected him archbp. of Caerleon desolate scenery " of the spot now named after
and primate of the Cambrian church, Du- St. David, and give some curious antiquarian
bricius himself resigning in his favour. The details. Haddan and Stubbs (Councils, i. 115-
locality of this s^mod, which holds a marked 120) give dates to the synod of Brefi and the
place in Welsh ecclesiastical traditions, was synod of Victory, a little before 569 and in
on the banks of the Brefi, a tributary of the 369, later than Rees's latest possible date for
T eifi Llanddewi Brefi it was afterwards
;
David's death and they regard the accounts-
;

called, from the dedication of its church to St. given of the synods by Ricemarchus, and
David. It is 8 miles from Lampeter, and from Giraldus after him, as purely fabulous, and
recent archaeological discoveries has been directed to the establishment of the apocryphal
identified with an important Roman station, supremacy of St. David and his see over the en-
the Loventium of the itineraries (Lewis, Top. tire British church. They express much doubt
Diet, of Wales cf. ;Haddan and Stubbs, as to the purpose of those assemblies being
Councils, i. 117). The Pelagian heresy, how- to crush Pelagianism. Valuable documentary
ever, still survived, and the new arciilDishop information and references as to the whole
convened another synod, the issue of which subject of the early Welsh episcopate are given
was so decided as to gain it the name of the in Appendix C (op. cit.), and it is maintained
Synod of Victory. It is entered in the Annates that " there is no real evidence of the existence
Cambriae, " Synodus Victoriae apud Britones of any archiepiscopate at all in Wales during
congregatur," under a.d. 569, but not with full the Welsh period, if the term is held to imply
confidence (M. H. B. 831). It is also men- jurisdiction admitted or even claimed (until
tioned, without a date, in the Annates Mene- the 12th cent.) by one see over another."
venses (Wharton, Angt. Sac. ii. 648). After David was canonized by pope Calixtus c.
residing for a while at Caerleon on Usk, where A.D. 1 120, and commemorated on Mar. 1
the seat of the primate was then established, (Rees, op. cit. 201). [c.h.]
David, by permission of king Arthur, removed Decius. The reign of this emperor, though
to Menevia, the Menapia of the Itineraries, among the shortest in the Roman annals (a.d.
one of the ports for Ireland (Wright, Celt, 249-251), has gained a pre-eminence in eccle-
Roman, and Saxon, 138). The Roman road siastical history altogether disproportioned to
Via Julia led to it the voyage across was 45
; its place in general history. It was burnt in
miles the Menapii, one of the tribes which
; on the memories of men as a fiery trial, and
held the E. coast of Ireland, were no doubt a occasioned many memorable controversies.
colony from the opposite shore of Britain (ib. When Cn. Messius Decius Trajanus first
43) ;David's baptism by the bp. of Munster appears in history it is with a grown-up son,
indicates a religious connexion between Men- himself between fifty and sixty, as a member
evia and Ireland. The tradition of a mission of the Roman senate, in the last year of the
of the British church to Ireland to restore the reign of Philip the Arabian. The army elected
faith there, under the auspices of David, him as emperor, and forced him to lead them
Gildas, and Cadoc (Haddan and Stubbs, into Italy. Near Verona they encountered
Councils, i. 115) points the same way. May Philip, who was defeated and slain (June 17,
we not, therefore, assume that the see was A.D. 249), and Decius began to reign. He
removed because the tide of Saxon conquest associated hisown son and Annius Maximus
drove the British church to cultivate closer Gratus with him as Caesars.
relations with their Celtic brethren opposite ? The edict which made his name a byword of
As primate, David distinguished himself by reproach may have been due to a desire to
saintly character and apostolic zeal, a glowing, restore the rigorous morality of the old Roman
not to say an overcharged, description of which life, and the old religion which gave that
is given in Giraldus. It is generally agreed that morality its sanctions. If we may judge by
Wales was divided into dioceses in his time. the confessions of the great Christian teachers,
Rees, in his learned essay on the Welsh saints, who owned that the church deserved its
shews that of the dedications and localities of sufferings, the lives of its members did not
the churches of the principality, a large num- then present a very lovely aspect. Christian
ber terminate in David's native name, ddewi, men were effeminate and self-indulgent, trim-
or are otherwise connected with his memory ming their beard and dyeing their hair ;

( Welsh Saints, p. 52). These instances, more- Christian women painted their faces, and
over, abound in a well-defined district and
; brightened their eyes with cosmetics. The
Rees has ingeniously used these circumstances clergy were covetous and ambitious, looking
DECIUS DECIUS 249
on their profession as a path to wealth and The
persecution of Decius (commonly
influence. In addition to these evils they reckoned as the seventh) may fairly be meas-
presented, even more than they had done in ured as to its extent, if not its actual severity,
the days of the Antonines, the aspect of a secretby the list of mart>Ts under it still found in the
society with a highly compact organization. calendar of the Western church. It was more
That the late emperor had been supposed to extensive and more systematic than any that
favour it or even to have been secretly a mem- had preceded it. Fabian, bp. of Rome, was
ber of it was enough to add another element among the foremost of the victims Babylas ;

to the policy which Decius now adopted. of Antioch, Pionius of Smyrna (seized, it was
That policy was opened early in a.d. 250 by said, while celebrating the anniversary of the
an edict no longer extant,* of which we can mart>Tdom of Polycarp), Agatha of Sicily,
form a fair estimate, partly from an account Polyeuctes of Armenia, Carpus and his deacon
given by Gregory of Nyssa Vit. Greg. Thaum.),
(
of Thyatira, Maximus (a layinan) of Asia,
and partly from the history of the persecution, Alexander, bp. of Jerusalem, Acacius of the
as traced by Cyprian, in his epistles and the Phrygian Antioch, Epimachus and Nemesius
treatise de Lapsis, and by Dionysius of of Alexandria, Peter and his companions of
Alexandria (Eus. H. E. vi. 40-42). It did Lampsacus, Irenaeus of Neo-Caesarea, Martial
not order any sharp measures of extermina- of Limoges, Abdon and Sennen (Persians then
tion. Magistrates throughout the empire at Rome), Cassian of Imola, Lucian aThracian,
were ordered, under heavy penalties, to put Trypho and Respicius of Bithynia, the Ten
pressure upon the worshippers of Christ to ab- Martyrs of Crete, have all found a place in the
jure Christianity. Fear did its work on many martyrologies of this period, and, after allow-
whose faith had never had any real ground- ing uncertainty to some of the names, the list
work in conviction. The seats of the magis- is enough to shew that there was hardly a
trates were thronged with apostates, some province of the empire where the persecu-
rushing eagerly to be conspicuous among the tion was not felt. Among " confessors " (a
first to offer sacrifice and sprinkle incense on title which seems to have been then, for
the altar some pale and trembling, as if the first time, used in this sense) were
;

about to be themselves sacrificial victims. In Origen, who was tortured on the rack, and
that crowd of renegades were, too, not a few the boy Dioscorus who, at the age of 15,
base and feeble-hearted priests of the church. offered himself for the crown of martyrdom,
Others found an ingenious way of satisfying but was spared by the Alexandrian prefect in
their conscience, and securing their position pity for his youth. To this reign belongs the
and life. The magistrates were not above well-known legend of the Seven Sleepers of
accepting bribes, and for a reasonable money Ephesus, told for the first time by Gregory of
payment would give a certificate (libellus) that Tours (de Glor. Martyr, c. 95). Confessing the
sacrifice had been duly offered, without mak- faith, like Dioscorus, in the prime of early
ing the actual performance of the rite com- manhood, they were, it was said, walled up in
pulsory. The libellatici were rightly branded a cave, and left to die. They fell asleep, and
by Christian feeling with a double note of the place acquired a local fame for its sanctity.
infamy. They added dishonesty and false- In the reign of Theodosius (a.d. 447) the cave
hood to cowardiceand denial. Bad as the was opened, and the sleepers awoke, went
sacrificati,the thurificati, might be, they were forth, and were startled at the changes which
not so contemptible as these. Next, severe they witnessed, temples destroj'ed and
measures were brought to bear on the faithful. churches standing in their place. Their
They were dragged before the prefects and second life was, however, of short duration.
other magistrates, questioned as to their faith, They again lay down together and fell asleep,
required to sacrifice, exposed to insults and this time not to wake again.
outrages if they refused, thrust into prison, Happily, the persecution was as short as it
and, in many instances, ill-treated till they was severe. The attacks of the Goths (or the
died. The wiser and more prudent bishops, Carpi, probably a Gothic tribe) drew Decius
such as Dionysius of Alexandria and Cyprian and his son into Pannonia, where they fell in
of Carthage, followed the counsel of their battle. In some respects the after-effects of
Lord (Matt. x. 23), and the example of Poly- the Decian persecution were more important
carp, fled from the storm themselves, and than its direct results. It cleared off the
exhorted their followers to do the same. crowd of half-hearted Christians, and left
Some, who thus withdrew from the common behind those who were prepared by its dis-
life of men, never returned to it (e.g. Paul, the cipline for the severer struggles that were to
hermit of the Thebaid, and Maximus of Nice), come under Valerian and Diocletian. Ques-
and the Decian period has been commonly tions arose as to the treatment of those
regarded, though with some exaggeration, as who had apostatized (the lapsi of Cyprian's
the starting-point of the anchoretic life. The treatise). Were the libellatici to be dealt
wiser pastors continued, as far as they could, with on the same footing as the thurificati ?
to watch over their flocks and keep them Were either capable of readmission into the
steadfast in the faith, even while exposed to fold of Christ ? Was that readmission to be
taunts and suspicionsof cowardiceordeception. conditional upon the church's normal disci-
Others languished in prison, like the sufferers pline, or were the confessors to be allowed to
at Rome, of whom Cyprian tells, " sine solatio give a certificate of absolution (the libellus
mortis." Some courted death not in vain, or pads) to those whose weakness or repentance
met it bravely. was sufficient reason for indulgence ? Some
* Adocument purporting to give the text of tlie of those who prided themselves, like many of
edict was published at Toulouse a.d.
1664, but is the Roman confessors, on their constancy,
universally acknowledged to be spurious. looked down with scorn on the indulgence
250 DEMETRIAS DIANIUS
shewn by Cyprian and Cornelius to the The statement that Demetrius first changed
lapsi, and even taunted the latter with having the singular ecclesiastical arrangement of
been a libellaticus. The tendency to ascetic Egypt, by appointing three bishops in ad-
rigorism of discipline would doubtless have dition to the bp. of Alexandria, who had
shewn itself sooner or later in any case, but formerly governed the whole province, is
historically the Novatianist schisms had probably correct, though the only direct
their beginning in the Decian persecution. Cf. authority for it is that of Eutychius, patriarch
Eus. H. E. vi. 39-45 Cyprian, de Laps., and
; of Alexandria, in the loth cent. (cf. Lightfoot,
Epp. passim the articles in this diet, on the
; Philtppians, p. 230). Possibly this change was
persons named above and an excellent paper
; due to special views on church government,
on Decius by Hefele in Wetzer and Welte's which may have influenced Demetrius in his
Kirchen Lexicon. For the general history of harsh judgment on the ordination of Origen be-
the reign, see Gibbon (c. x.), whose narrative yond the limits of his jurisdiction. [b.f.w.]
is based on Zosimus and Zonaras. [e.h.p.] Demophilus, bp. of Constantinople, a.d.
Demetrias, a Roman virgin to whom 370 expelled 380
; died 386; formerly bp.
;

Jerome wrote his treatise (Ep. 130, ed. Vail.) of Berea born of good family in Thessalonica
;

on the keeping of virginity. Her family was (Philostorg. H. E. ix. 14). On the death of
illustrious at Rome, her grandmother Proba Eudoxius in 370 he was elected by the Arians
(who is much praised by Jerome) having had to the bishopric of Constantinople (Socr. H. E.
three sons, all consuls. Demetrias had in iv. Soz. H. E. vi. 13).
14 ; The people, how-
early life wished to take the vow of virginity, were much divided (Philostorg. H. E. ix.
ever,
but feared her parents' opposition. They, 10).The orthodox party chose Evagrius for
however, fully approved, and it gladdened all their bishop, and he was ordained by Eusta-'*-
the churches of Italy. Her father having thius, the deposed bp. of Antioch. This was
died just before the sack of Rome by Alaric, the signal for an outburst of fury on the part
the family sold their property and set sail for of the Arians. Eustathius and Evagrius
Africa, witnessing the burning of Rome as were banished by Valens, and their followers
they left Italy and, arriving in Africa, fell
; bitterly persecuted (Socr. H. E. iv. 14, 16 ;

into the hands of the rapacious count Herac- Soz. H. E. vi. 13, 14). Demophilus, soon
lian, who took away a large part of their after his accession, went to Cyzicus in con-
property. Jerome exhorts Demetrias to a junction with Dorotheus, or Theodorus, of
life of study and fasting care in the selection
; Heraclea, to procure the election of an Arian
of companions consecration of her wealth
; bishop, that see having been vacant since the
to Christ's service and to working with her
; banishment of Eunomius. But the people of
own hands. He warns her not to perplex Cyzicus refused to acknowledge them till they
herself with difficult questions introduced by had anathematized Aetius, Eunomius, and
the Origenists ; and recommends the study their followers. They were then permitted
of Scripture. He exhorts her to prefer the to ordain a bishop chosen by the people. The
coenobitic to the hermit life, and bears testi- bishop who was ordained straightway and
mony, as he had done 30 years before to clearly taught the consubstantial faith (Philo-
Eustochium, to the excellence of the virgin- storg. H. E. ix. 13).
state, notwithstanding the attacks made In 380 changed times came and made the
upon it. [w.H.F.] reign of Theodosius I. and the patriarchate of
Demstrius (2) succeeded Julianus a.d. 189, Demophilus memorable. The emperor Theo-
as nth bp. of Alexandria (Eus. H. E. v. 22). dosius offered to confirm him in his see, if he
He presided over the see for 43 years, and would subscribe the Nicene Creed. Demo-
died A.D. 231-232 (ib. vi. 26). He appears to philus refused, and was immediately ordered
have been of an energetic and imperious to give up his churches. He then called his
nature. He took an active interest in the followers together, and retired, with Lucius of
Catechetical School, and is said to have sent Alexandria and others, to a place of worship
one of its early chiefs, Pantaenus, on a without the walls (Socr. H. E. v. 7). The
[second ?] mission " to the Indians " on their churches of Constantinople, which had for
'own request (Hieron. de Vir. III. 36). After forty years been in Arian hands, were now
Clement had left Alexandria, he placed Origcn restored to the orthodox and similarly in
;

at its head, c. 203 (Eus. H. E. vi. 5), and other cities. It was, in fact, a general dis-
strenuously encouraged him to continue his establishment of Arianism and re-establish-
work, when his indiscreet zeal had exposed ment of Catholicism. Philostorgius (H. E.
him to misrepresentation {ib. vi. 8). Later ix. 19) adds that Demophilus went to his own
(a.d. 217), he sent Origen to the Roman city, Berea. But this must have been some
governor of Arabia, at the governor's earnest time afterwards, or he must have returned
invitation (ib. vi. 19). Origen fulfilled his from exile, for he represented the Arian party
mission satisfactorily, but not long afterwards at the synod held in Constantinople, a.d. 383
Demetrius's friendship for hini was inter- (Socr. Jti. E. V. 10 Soz. H. E. vii. 12).
; The
rupted. [Origen.] According to a late, and same writer says that Demophilus was wont
not verv trustworthy, authority, Demetrius is to throw everything into confusion, especially
reported to have written letters on the keeping the doctrines of the church, and quotes from
of Easter, maintaining the view adopted at a sermon at Constantinople, in which he
Nicaea (Eutychius, Ann. pp. 363 ff. Migne, spoke of the human nature of the Saviour as
;

Patrol, vol. cxi.). Other legendary stories of lost in the divine, as a glass of milk when
his life are given in the Chronicon Orientale poured into the sea. Philostorg. Patrol. Gk.
fpp. 72 f. ed. 1685), and more briefly by Ixv. Soz. and Socr. Patrol. Gk. Ixvii.
; [p.c]
Tillemont (Memoires, Origene, art .vii. torn, DianiUS or Dianaeus, for more than 20 years
iii. p. 225, ed. Bruxelles). bp. of Caesarea in Cappadocia, a saintly man
DIDYMUS DIDYMUS 251

much venerated in the early church, notwith- the Scriptures. Athanasius made the blind
standing his somewhat doubtful orthodoxy. scholar head of the Catechetical School, as a
He was almost certainly the bishop who fitting successor to Pantaenus and Clement.
baptized Basil the Great on his return from He was the twelfth who occupied that chair.
Athens, and ordained him lector (Basil, de In his earlier manhood, Anthony, visiting
Sp. Sancto, 29, p. 357). Basil speaks of him Alexandria to support the Catholic cause
in terms of most affectionate respect, describ- against the Arians, entered Didymus's cell,
ing him as remarkable for his virtues, frank, and despite his modest reluctance obliged him
generous, and attractive from his amiability, to offer up prayers (Rosweyd. Vit. Pair. 944,
venerable both in aspect and in character 539, ed. 1617), and asked Didymus whether
(Ep. 51 [84]). We see him, however, in he was sad on account of his blindness. After
these troubled times weak and undecided, led the question had been twice repeated, Didy-
by his peaceful disposition to deprecate con- mus owned that he did feel the affliction pain-
troversy, and by his feebleness to side with fully. " Do not be distressed," rejoined the
the strongest ; destitute of strong theological saintly hermit, " for the loss of a faculty
convictions, and wanting the clearness of enjoyed by gnats and flies, when you have
thought to appreciate subtleties of doctrine. that inward eyesight which is the privilege of
He was, therefore, too often found on the none but saints." Jerome [Ep. 68 cf. Socr.
;

semi-Arian side of the church. If, as Tille- iv. 29) stayed for a month at Alexandria in
mont holds, he is the Danius who heads the 386, mainly (see Prolog, in Eph.) to see
list of bishops to whom pope Julius directed Didymus and have Scripture difficulties ex-
his dignified reply to the insolent letter ad- plained bv him (Soz. I.e.). " In many points,"
dressed to him from Antioch, he took a leading wrote Jerome in a.d. 400 (Ep. 84), " I give
part in the synod held at that city in the him thanks. I learned from him things which
early months of a.d. 340, by which the de- I had not known ; what I did know, his
position of Athanasius was confirmed, and teaching has helped me to retain." Rufinus
George of Cappadocia placed on the throne of was also, for a much longer time, a pupil
Alexandria [Epistola Julii, apud Athanas. of Didymus. Palladius (Rosweyd. I.e.), who
Apolog. ii. p. 239). He also took part in visited him four times, states that he had a
the famous synod of Antioch, in Encaeniis, dream of the emperor Julian's death at the
A.D. 341, and was present at Sardica, a.d. 347, exact time it occurred in his Persian expedition.
where, according to Hilary (p. 29), he joined Sozomen says that in arguing for the Nicene
in the anathema against Julius and Athan- faith, Didymus was successful by his extreme
asius. His weakness of character was still —
persuasiveness he seemed to make every one
more fatally shewn when, after the council a judge of the points in dispute (iii. 15) ;and
of Constantinople, a.d. 359, the formula of Isidore of Pelusium {Ep. i. 331) and Libanius
Rimini was sought to be imposed on the (Ep. 321) speak of his great ability.
church by the authority of the emperor. To Our fullest information about him is derived
the intense grief of Basil, Dianius yielded to from Jerome, who frequently refers to him as
pressure and signed the heretical document. his old teacher, and affectionately describes
Basil could not hold communion with one who him as " my seer," in allusion to the contrast
had so far compromised his faith, and fled to between his physical blindness and his keen-
Nazianzum. It was reported that he had ness of spiritual and intellectual perception.
anathematized his bishop, but this he indig- Jerome translated into Latin Didymus's
nantly denies (Basil, Ep. 51 [84]). Dianius treatise On the Holy Spirit, and prefixed a
keenly felt the absence of his eloquent and preface, in which he spoke of the author as
able young counsellor, especially when Julian having " eyes like the spouse in the Song of
endeavoured to re-establish paganism. After Songs," as " unskilled in speech but not in
two years he recalled Basil, and declared that knowledge, exhibiting in his very speech the
he had signed the creed of Rimini in the character of an apostolic man, as well by
simplicity of his heart, hoping to restore peace luminous thought as by simplicity of words."
to the distracted church, with no idea of im- Writing in 392 [de Viris Illustr. 109), Jerome
pugning the faith of Nicaea. Basil, satisfied gives a short biographical account of Didymus.
with Dianius's explanations, returned to his The extent to which Didymus may be called
former post of adviser of the bishop till his an Origenizer has been discussed. See Min-
death, which occurred soon after, probably garelli's " Commentarius " prefixed to his
A.D. 362. [Basilius of Caesarea.] [e.v.] edition of Didymus's de Trinitate (Bologna,
Didymus, head of the Catechetical School of 1769). In his extant writings there is no
Alexandria in the 4th cent., born a.d. 309 or assertion of Origenian views as to the pre-
314 (Tillemont, Mem. x. 387). When only existence of souls, and he affirms, more than
four years old he lost his sight from disease ;
once, the endless nature of future punishment ;

and consequently was never taught, as he but seems to have believed that some of the
himself declared, even the usual rudiments of fallen angels occupied a midway position
learning. But his extraordinary force of between angels and demons, and would be
character and intense thirst for knowledge tri- ultimately forgiven. Neither Epiphanius nor
umphed over all disadvantages. He prayed for Theophilus, nor indeed any one before the
inward light, " but added studies to prayers" 6th cent, except Jerome, laid Origenism to
(Rufin. ii. 7). He learned the alphabet by his charge ; and with regard to the alleged
touch from engraved wooden tablets, and condemnation of his memory by the 5th
words and syllables by attentive listening. general council, as he is never named in the
Thus he became master of various sciences Acts, the utmost that can be made of such a
(Socr. iv. 25
; Soz. iii. 15
; Theod. iv. 26), and statement is, that the condemnation of Origen
attained a truly wonderful familiarity with in that synod's nth anathema (Mansi, ix. 383)
.

252 DIDYMUS DINOOTH


was somewhat largely construed as carrying Catholics had adopted since the earlier days
with it, by implication, the condemnation of of the Arian strife). He enforces the per-
other writers more or less identified with his petuity of Christ's kingdom (as if in con-
school of thought. See Tillemont's " com- troversy with Marcellians), and speaks of the
parison of Didymus with St. Gregory of Nyssa" Virgin Mother as Theotokos (ii. 4). He be-
(x. 396). bidymus's work On the Holy stows much time and pains on the Macedonian
Spirit was clearly a protest against Mace- controversy. Occasionally he kindles and
donianism (see Tillemont, x. 393). glows with strong devotional fervour, and
His comments on the Catholic Epistles are concludes an eloquent passage on the glory of
extant, as translated by Epiphanius Scholas- the Holy Trinity with a thrice-repeated Amen.
ticus (see Galland. Bib. Vet. Pair. ii.). His Shortly before this passage he invokes the
notes on I. Peter shew a dislike of Chiliasm, as archangels, and expresses his belief in the
a carnal and frivolous theory ;he asserts free intercession of the saints (ii. 7). [w.b.]
will, opposes Manicheans, admits the possi- Dimoeritae, another name for the followers
bility of faults on the part of angels being of Apollinarius, probably to be explained by
cleansed through Christ and in words very a passagein aletterof (iregoryof Nazianzum to
;

characteristic of the indomitable student and Nectarius of Constantinople {Ep. 202, al. Or.
teacher, rebukes Christians who neglect sacred 46). Gregory says that Apollinarius's book
studies and attend only to practical life (on affirmed that He Who had come down from
I. Peter iii. 15). He comments briefly on II. above had no roOs, but that rijc OeoTrira tov
Peter, but sets it aside as spurious and " not Movoyevoi's rrjv tov vov cpvoLV dvatr\Tipil:(ra<jav
in the canon," although (see infra) in the de Hence, as the Apollinarians maintained
that
Trinitate he cites it as Petrine. The chief our Lord assumed only (dLixoLpia) two of thS
features of his remarks on St. John's three three
parts (Tu,ua, ^vxv, i'ols) of which perfect
(

Epistles are, (i) the earnestness against Docet-


humanity consists, they were called Dimoeritae
ism, Valentinianism, all speculations injurious
by Epiphanius, who says {Haer. Ixxvii.) that
to the Maker of the world, (2) the assertion
"some denied especially the perfect Incarna-
that a true knowledge of God is possible with-
out a knowledge of His essence, (3) care to
tion of Christ ; some asserted His body
urge the necessity of combining orthodoxy phatically
consubstantial with His divinity ; some em-
denied that He had ever taken
with right action. In the notes on Jude, he a soul
; others not less emphatically refused
says that Christ is called the only Sovereign to Him
a mind."
because He is the only true God. He speaks Among the leaders of the Dimoeritae wasone
of the doom of those who turn away absolutely
ViTALius. Both Gregory of Nazianzum and
to evil as hopeless.
Epiphanius came in contact with him the
His treatise Against the Manicheans (pub. ;

former while
by Combefis in his Auctarium Novum, 1672) presbyter, the Vitalius was, it would seem, a
latter when he had been made
begins with logical formulae, intended to
a bishop of the sect. Epiphanius at Antioch,
disprove the existence of two unoriginated
a long discussion with Vitalius, put the
Principles. From the blame and punishment in crucial question " Yon admit the Incarna-
:
attached to evil, he infers that Satan and his
tion, do you also admit that Christ took a mind
followers are not evil by nature he discusses
;
" (I'oCi/)?" Theanswer was, "No." Epiphanius
the terms " by nature children of wrath
" In what sense then do you call
(which he understands to mean " really persisted :

children of wrath "), " children of this


Christ rAetoj ? " The point was debated with-
world," " son of perdition," " generation of out results. Epiphanius urged that not only
vipers," with the aim of shewing that they do was nothing gained by excluding mind, as we
not contravene the great moral facts of free understand it, from the nature of Christ but ;

will and responsibility. The devil, he urges, also that by such exclusion much was lost
was created good, and became a devil by his which made His nature, character, and actions
own free will. If it be objected, why then intelligible. Vitalius and his followers avoided
did God make a being who was to become so Epiphanius's arguments by reverting to their
pestilent ? the objection really lies against the favourite texts, e.g. " We have the mind of
whole plan of God's moral government, which Christ " (I. Cor. ii. 16), etc.
intends His rational creatures to become good The Dimoeritae probably existed, as a sect,
by choosing goodness, and therefore leaves for a few years only, either under that name
them capable of choosing evil, and drawing on or as Vitalians, Synusiasts, Polemians, Valen-
themselves the result of such a choice. He tinians, after some favourite leader or opinion.
also asserts the transmission of original sin :
Then they died out, or merged themselves into
a Saviour born by ordinary generation would other bodies holding similar views, or were
have incurred the sin entailed on Adam's brought back to the church. The books,
whole posterity. His three books On the psalteries, and hymns composed and issued by
Trinity have not reached us in a perfect Apollinarius and his principal followers were
state. They are interesting as exhibiting the met, and their effects counteracted, by books
Athanasian character, so to speak, of his and hymns such as have given to Gregory of
thought in presence of Anomoeans and of Nazianzum a name among ecclesiastical song-
Macedonians. He admits II. Peter as genuine : writers. Epiphanius, Panaria, iii. 11; Haer.
perhaps the opinion he had formerly held as Ixxvii. (ed. Dindorf, iii. i, p. 454) ;Oehler,
to its non-canonicity had been reconsidered. Corpus Haereseolog. ii. 330, etc. ; and the
He is very earnest, almost in the style of the usual Church histories, e.g. Neander, Niedner,
" Athanasian Creed," on the co-equality of Hase, Robertson, s.v. " Apollinarianism,"
the Divine Hypostases (he uses that term in should be consulted. [j.m.f.]
the sense which the younger generation of Dinooth, Dinothus, abbat of Bangor Iscoed,
;

DINOOTH DIOCLETIAN 253


A Welsh saint, placed by Rees between a.d. 500 not preach the way of life to the English nation,
and 542. Originally a North British chieftain, they should at their hands undergo the ven-
reverses drove him into Wales, where he found geance of death." The conjunction desired
a protector in Cyngen, prince of Powys. Like by Augustine (" una cum nobis," Bede) in-
many other British chieftains who lost their volved their ecclesiastical submission. " Di-
lands in the Saxon conquest (Rees, Welsh nooth's Answer," in recognizing this, may have
Saints, 207), Dinooth embraced a life of re- appeared to some one in after-times a sufficient
ligion, and, under Cyngen, founded, in con- ground to assign the document to this occa-
junction with his sons, Deiniol, Cynwyl, and sion. The judgment came about 10 years
Gwarthan, the monastery of Bangor on the afterwards, a.d. 613 (Ann. Cambr. and Ann.
Dee, of which he was the first abbat. Bede Tighern., preferable to earlier dates, as 603 of
mentions his name in his narrative of the Flor. Wig. and 606 or 607 of ^ S.C.; cf. Had-
.

second conference at Augustine's Oak (//. E. dan and Stubbs, i. 123), when Ethelfrid, the
ii. 2), but merely says, cautiously, "Tempore pagan king of Northumbria, invaded the
illo Dinoot abbas praefuisse narratur." Bede, Britons at Chester. Being about to give
who wrote a century and a quarter after battle, he observed their " priests," who were
Augustine's time, shews no special acquaint- there to pray for the soldiers, drawn up apart
ance with the internal affairs of the Britons, in a place of greater safety, and under the mili-
and we cannot help suspecting that the pre- tary protection of prince Brocmail. They had
sent uncertainty as to the chronology of Welsh come chiefly from Bangor, after a three days'
hagiology existed when Bede wrote. A later fast. The invader, regarding them as a con-
statement makes the founder of Bangor alive tingent of his enemy, attacked them first and
in A.D. 602 or 603, and brings him to the slew about 1,200, only 50 escaping. Bede
conference, though he must have been in ex- either here uses the term " sacerdotes " and
tremest old age, and would have had a moun- " monachi " as synonymous, or the priests
tain journey from the Dee to the lower Severn were in charge of the monks, leading their de-
(see B.C. A. "Augustine's Oak"; also Haddan votions. It was a disastrous blow to Bangor,
andStubbs, iii. 40, 41, on Augustine's journey) and was naturally handed down as a fulfilment
it even reports the speech he is said to have of Augustine's words; but we do not hear that
made in the name of the British church in the monastery itself was attacked. Some 60
answer to Augustine. For this document see years later the annalists record " Combustio
Haddan and Stubbs (Councils, i. 122), where Bennchoriae Brittonum " (Hadd. and St. i.
the answer is quoted in the original Welsh with 125), probably referring to this Bangor of the
Spelman's Latin translation. Two copies of Dee. Malmesbury (G. R. ed. Hardy, i. 66) de-
the original MS. exist in the Cottonian collec- scribes the extensive ruins of the place in his
tion. It is accepted as genuine by Leland day
— " tot semiruti parietes ecclesiarum, tot
(Tanner, Biblioth. 1748, art. " Dinotus," p. anfractus porticuum, tanta turba ruderum,
228), Stillingfieet (Orig. Brit. i. 536), Lappen- quantum vix alibi cernas " the credibility of
;

berg (Hist, of Eng. i. 135). On the other hand, which description has been almost destroyed
the document does not mention the name of by sometimes translating the first clause, " the
Augustine, nor allude to one subject of the con- ruined walls of so many churches." The re-
ference which is markedly noted by Bede, the mains had nearly disappeared in the time of
evangelization of the Anglo-Saxons. In fact Camden. (Camd. ed. Gough, ii. 422, 429 ;

it contains no name whatever, but is a firm Smith, ad. Bed. E. H. ii. 2 Tanner, Notit. ed.
;

and temperate repudiation of papal authority, Nasmith, Flint, ii.) The site is on the road
and an assertion of the supremacy of " the between Wrexham and Whitchurch, about
bp. of Caerleon upon Usk " over the British 5 miles from each. Its modern state and
church. For any internal evidence to the con- surviving vestiges are described in Lewis
trary, the " Answer might have been penned (Topog. Diet, of Wales, art. " Bangor"). Le-
"
in reply to some demand made upon the land's description is in his Itinerary (vol. v.
British church by the see of Canterbury p. 30, 2nded. Hearne). [ch.]
centuries after Dinooth. It bears upon that Diocletian (Docles, Diodes, Caius Vale-
subject, and that alone. rias Diocletianns Jovius), a.d. 284-305. The
We know less about Dinooth than about his acts that make the reign of this emperor
famous monastery upon the right bank of the memorable in the history of the church be-
Dee, 10 or 12 miles from Chester. The name long to its closing years. Had he died before
of Bangor ys y coed (Bangor under the wood) A.D. 303 he would have taken his place among
distinguishes it from other Bangors, especially the rulers whose general tolerance helped
that of Carnarvonshire, where Deiniol, the Christianity to obtain its victory. As it is, his
son of Dinooth, founded another monastery, name is identified with the most terrible of its
which _was soon afterwards made the seat of persecutions. For three centuries men reck-
a bishopric. So numerous were the monks oned from the commencement of his reign as
of Bangor Iscoed that, as Bede puts it, on their from the era of mart>TS and the date is still
;

being divided into seven parts with a ruler over recognized in the Coptic Church as the basis of
each, none of those parts consisted of less than its chronology.
300 men, who all lived by the labour of their The earlier years of Diocletian concern us
hands. It thus rivalled the Irish Bangor only in connexion with the struggle which
[Comgall], and, from the learned men men- came to a head when his work seemed nearly
tioned by Bede as residing there, must have over. Elected by the soldiers in Bithynia at
been as much a college as a monastery. Au- the age of 39, after the murder of Numerian,
gustine's prediction was levelled, not against he was formally installed at Nicomedia. In
this institution in particular, but the British A.D. 286 he chose Maximian as his colleague,
church and people at large ; "if they would gave him the title first of Caesar and then of
254 DtOCLETiAN DIOCLETIAN
Augustus, and sent him to command in the circle itself some were impatient of the toler-
West, while he remained in the East, chiefly at ance of Diocletian. The mother of Galerius,
Nicomedia, which he tried to make, by lavish who gave sacrificial banquets almost daily,
outlay on its buildings, a new capital for the was annoyed because Christian officers and
empire. It indicates his intention to uphold soldiers refused to come to them. The cases of
the religion of the state that he assumed the Maximilian of Theveste, in proconsular Africa,
surname of Jovius, and gave to his colleague who (a.d. 295) had refused to serve as a soldier
that of Herculius. Among the buildings with and take the military oath, as incompatible
which he embellished the various provinces with his allegiance to Christ, and of Marcellus
were temples of Zeus, Apollo, Nemesis, Hecate, (a. d. 298) who at Tingis injMauritania solemnly
,

at Antioch, of Isis and Serapis at Rome, of Isis renounced his allegiance to the emperor rather
at Phylae, of Mithras at Vindobona. He con- than take part in idolatrous festivals, had
sulted haruspices and augurs as to the success probably alarmed Galerius himself (Ruinart,
of his enterprises, and in more difficult emer- Acta Sincera, pp. 309, 312).
gencies the oracle of the Milesian Apollo at Occasions for decisive measures were soon
Branchidae(Lactant. ^eMoy/. Pers. cc. lo, ii). found. Diocletian, who seems to have had a
The appointment of Constantius Chlorus and devout belief in divination, had offered sacri-
Galerius in a.d. 293 as Caesars under the two fice, and the haruspices were inspecting the
Augusti introduced new elements. Each was entrails of the victim to see what omens were
called on to prove his loyalty to the system in- to be found there. The Christian officers and
to which he was adopted by a new marriage. servants of the emperor were present as part
Constantius divorced Helena and married of their duty, and satisfied their conscience by.^
Theodora, the step-daughter of Maximian. making the sign of the cross upon their fore-
Galerius, also repudiating his former wife, heads. The diviners were, or pretended to be,
received the hand of Valeria, the daughter of struck with amazement at the absence, despite
Diocletian and Prisca. To Constantius was repeated sacrifices, of the expected signs. At
entrusted the government of Gaul and Britain, last they declared their work hindered by the
to Galerius the provinces between the Adriatic presence of profane persons. The emperor's
and the Euxine. Diocletian kept the pro- rage was roused. His personal attendants and
vinces of Asia under his own control. Maxi- the officials in his palace were ordered to sacri-
mian had those of Africa and Italy. The edict fice under penalty of being scourged. Letters
of Gallienus, a.d. 259, had placed Christianity were sent to military officers bidding them to
in the number of religiones licitae, and there compel their soldiers to a like conformity under
had been no formal persecution since. Dio- pain of dismissal. The mother of Galerius
cletian and Maximian began by adopting the urged the emperor on, and found but a feeble
same policy and the martyrdoms which are
; resistance. He deprecated the slaughter and
referred to the earlier years of their reign, like wished to confine the edict to servants of his
those of St. Maurice and the Theban Legion at household and soldiers. He would take coun-
Martigny (Octodurum), of St. Victor at Mar- sel with his friends and consult the gods. One
seilles, of SS. Cosmas and Damian and others of the haruspices was accordingly sent to the
in Cilicia, if more than legendary, must be re- oracle of the Milesian Apollo at Branchidae.
ferred to special causes, and not to a general The answer came, not from the priestess only,
policy of persecution. The somewhat cloudy but, as it were, from the god himself speaking
rhetoric of Eusebius in describing the condi- from the recesses of his cave, telling him that
tion of the church of this time indicates that the presence of the self-styled " just ones " on
the last struggle with the old religion could not the earth made it impossible for the oracles to
long be averted. The most trusted and in- speak the truth. This turned the scale and
fluential eunuchs of the household, Dorotheus the emperor gave way. All he asked for was
and Gorgonius, were avowedly Christians and that bloodshed might, if possible, be avoided.
excused from attending at heathen sacrifices Galerius had wished to condemn to the flames
(Eus. viii. i). Prisca the wife, and Valeria the all who refused to sacrifice. After many
daughter, of Diocletian were kept back from divinations, the Feast of the Terminalia (Feb.
an open profession of faith but their absence
; 23) of A.D. 303 was chosen as the fit day for
from all sacrifices made men look on them with issuing the edict against the new society. At
suspicion (Lactant. de Mart. Persec. c. 15). break of day the prefect, attended by officers
The church of Nicomedia was the most con- and secretaries, went to the church of Nico-
spicuous edifice in the city. The adherents of media while Diocletian and Galerius watched
the old system had good reason for alarm. the proceedings from the palace. The doors
They saw in every part of the empire an or- were broken open. Search was made for the
ganized society that threatened it with de- image of the Christian's God, which they ex-
struction. Symptoms of the coming conflict pected to find there. The books were burned,
began before long to shew themselves. Mal- the church sacked. Fear of the fire spreading
chus, the disciple of Plotinus (better known as made Diocletian shrink from burning the
Porphyry), wrote against the religion of the church, but a body of pioneers with axes and
Christians while maintaining a tone of rever- crowbars razed it in a few hours. Next morn-
ence towards Christ Himself, and so became ing an edict ordained that (i) all churches were
in their eyes their most formidable opponent. to be demolished (2) all sacred books burnt
; ;

Hierocles, first as Vicarius of Bithynia and (3) all Christian officials stripped of their dig-
afterwards, probably, as prefect of Egypt, nities, of civil rights, and there-
and deprived
fought against them with pen and sword, and fore rendered liable to torture and other out-
published Words of a Truth-lover to the Chris- rages ; while Christian men who were not
tians, in which Christ was compared with officials were to be reduced to slavery. A
Apollonius of Tyana. Within the imperial Christian who tore it down, with the sarcastic
1

DIOCLETIAN DtODORUS 25S

exclamation, " More triumphs of Goths and sistance Diocletian yielded. The two Caesars
Sarmatians "! was seized, tortured, and were to become Augusti. He would fain have
burnt alive at a slow fire. Shortly after, a fire named Maxentius the son of Maximian and
broke out in the palace and suspicion fell upon Constantine the son of Constantius to take
the Christians, notably upon the palace their place but Galerius coerced or persuaded
;

eunuchs. The use made of the occurrence to him to appoint Maximin and Severus, in whom
work upon Diocletian's fears justified the im- he hoped to find more submissive instruments.
pression of Christian writers that it was a de- When the formal acts had been completed, the
vice contrived by Galerius and executed by his emperor laid aside his official names Diock-
slaves. All who were suspected were examined tianus and Jovius, and returned to the simple
by torture ; within a fortnight there was Diodes of his youth. For the history of the
another similar alarm, and now there was no following year see Galerius and Constan-
limit to the old man's fury. His wife and tine. The retired emperor settled at Salona,
daughter were compelled to free themselves on the coast of Dalmatia, and occupied him-
from suspicion by joining in sacrifice. The self with building and gardening, and refused
eunuchs of his household, before so trusted, to abandon his cabbages for the cares of the
Dorotheus, Gorgonius, Petrus, were put to state. In 310 Maximian, after vainly strug-
death. The persecution raged throughout the gling against the growing power of Constan-
province. Some were burnt, some drowned, tine, who had succeeded Constantius, was com-
some thrust into dungeons. Altars were set pelled to end his life by his own hands. In 3 1
up in every court of justice, and both parties Galerius died in the agonies of a loathsome and
to suits compelled to sacrifice. A second edict horrible disease, and before his death con-
ordered that all the clergy, without option of fessed, by an edict of toleration, that the at-
sacrifice, should be imprisoned. Anthimus tempt which he had made to crush Christianity
bp. of Nicomedia was beheaded (Eus. H. E. had failed. Diocletian survived to witness
viii. 6). Hierocles as author and magistrate the alliance between Constantine and Licinius,
silenced by torture those whom he failed to con- to receive and decline an invitation to a con-
vince. Letters were sent to Maximian and ference with them at Milan, to hear that Con-
Constantius in the West, urging them to adopt stantine had charged him with conspiring first
like measures. The former was but too will- with Maxentius and then with Maximian, and
ing an instrument. The latter, more humane had ordered his statue and that of Maximian
and disposed to a policy of toleration, was com- to be thrown down in every part of the empire.
pelled to join in destroying the buildings of the In A.D. 313 the end came, some said through
Christians, and was glad if he could save their poison (Aurel. Vict. Epist. 39), to avoid a
lives (Lactant. de Mort. Persec. cc. 12-16). worse fate at the hands of Constantine and
Individual martyrdoms may be found with Licinius. It was characteristic of his fate as
more or less fulness in the Acta Sincera of representing the close of pagan imperialism,
Ruinart, in the Annals of Baronius, in most that he was the last emperor who celebrated a
Church Histories, notably in Fleury, viii. and triumph at Rome, and the last to receive the
ix. Here we merely note the extent, con- honour of apotheosis from the Roman senate
tinuance, and ferocity which distinguished (Preuss, p. 169). [e.h.p.]
this persecution from all others. In Syria, Diodorus (3), presbyter of Antioch, and c.
Palestine, Egypt, Western Africa, Italy, and A.D. 379 bp. of Tarsus, of a noble family of
Spain the passions of men were let loose, and Antioch, where he passed nearly the whole of
raged without restraint. In Gaul and Britain his life until he became a bishop (Theod. H. E.
only was there any safety. Constantius was iv. 24). He studied philosophy or secular
said (Eus. Vit. Const, i. 16) to have shewn a learning at Athens, where he probably was
marked preference for those who were true to an associate of Basil and Julian, the future
their religion, and refused to sacrifice. Else- emperor (Facund. lib. iv. c. 2, p. 59). On his
where every town in the empire witnessed acts return to his native city, Diodorus and his
of incredible cruelty. The wish to destroy all friend Flavian, also of noble birth (subse-
the sacred books of the Christians, and all the quently bp. of Antioch), embraced a religious
accessories of their worship, led men to seize life. Here, while still laymen, during the
on the deacons, readers, and others connected reign of Constantius, they exerted themselves
with the churches, and to torture them till energetically for the defence of the orthodox
they gave them up. In Dec. 303, Dio- faith against the Arians, who were covertly
cletian went to Rome to celebrate with Max- supported by bp. Leontius, c. 350. They gath-
imian the 20th anniversary of his accession. ered the orthodox laity even by night around
At the Vicennalia the hcence of the people the tombs of the martyrs, to join in the anti-
offended him, and he left after two weeks for phonal chanting of the Psalms, which, Theod-
Ravenna. There he was attacked by a severe oret tells us, was first instituted or revived by
illness, which detained him for some months. them, as a means of kindling religious zeal,
Slowly he made his way to Nicomedia, where after the model ascribed by tradition to the
he became worse. Prayers were offered for martyred bishop of their church, the holy
his recovery in all the temples. It was ru- Ignatius (Socr. H. E. vi. 8 Theod. H. E. ii. 24).
;

moured that his death was concealed till the These services strengthened the faithful to
arrival of Galerius. When he appeared to con- meet the persecutions. The weight of Dio-
tradict the rumour, he was so altered that he dorus and Flavian at Antioch was proved
could hardly be recognized. His mind, it was when in 350 their threat of withdrawal from
said, was seriously affected. Galerius came, communion induced Leontius to suspend
but It was to press on the emperor the duty and Aetius from the diaconate (Theod. u.s.). On
expediency of resigning. Maximian had been the accession of Julian, his attempt to re-
already persuaded to do so. After a feeble re- kindle an expiring paganism provided a new
"

256 DIODORUS DIODORUS


field for the energies of Diodorus. With pen bp. of Antioch, for which both the consecrating
and tongue he denounced the folly of a return prelates were excommunicated by the bishops
to an exploded superstition, and so called of the West (Soz. H. E. vii. 11). As Phalerius
forth the scurrilous jests of Julian. was bp. of Tarsus at a council at Constantino-
The persecution of the Catholic cause by the ple in 394, the date of Diodorus's death is ap-
Arian Valens recalled Diodorus, now a pres- proximately fixed. Facundus and others tell
byter, to his former championship of the us that he died full of days and glory, revered
Nicene faith. During the frequent banish- by the whole church and honoured by its chief
ments of Meletius, the spiritual instruction of doctors, by Basil, Meletius, Theodoret, Domnus
his diocese was chiefly entrusted to him and of Antioch, and even by the chief impugner of
Flavian, and Diodorus saved the barque of the soundness of his faith, Cyril of Alexandria.
the church from being " submerged by the This high credit was disturbed by the Nes-
waves of misbelief " (Theod. H. E. v. 4). torian controversies of the next cent. His
Valens having forbidden the Catholics to meet rationalizing spirit had led him to use language
within the walls of cities, Diodorus gathered about the Incarnation containing the principles
his congregation in the church in the old town of that heresy afterwards more fully devel-
S. of the Orontes. Immense numbers were oped by his disciple Theodorus. Thus, not
there " fed by him with sound doctrine without justice, he has been deemed the virtual
(Chrys. Laus Diodori, § 4, t. iii. p. 749). parent of Nestorianism and called " a Nestor-
When forcibly driven out of this church, he ian before Nestorius." It was his repugnance
gathered his congregation in the soldiers' to the errors of Apollinarianism which led him
exercising ground, or " gymnasium," and ex- to the opposite errors of Nestorianism. His
horted them from house to house. The texts sense of the importance of the truth of Christ's
and arguments of his discourses were chiefly manhood caused him to insist on Its distinct-
furnished by Flavian, and clothed by Diodorus ness from His Godhead in a manner which
in a rhetorical dress. His oratory is compared gradually led to Its being represented as a
by Chrysostom to " a lyre " for melody, and separate personality. He drew a distinction
to " a trumpet " for the power with which, between Him Who according to His essence
like Joshua at Jericho, he broke down the — —
was Son of God the eternal Logos and Him
strongholds of his heretical opponents. He Who through divine decree and adoption be-
also held private assemblies at his own house came Son of God. The one was Son of God
to expound the faith and refute heresy by nature, the other by grace. The son of
(Theod. H. E. iv. 25 Chrys. I.e.
; Facund.
; man became Son of God because chosen to be
iv. 22). Such dauntless championship of the the receptacle or temple of God the Word. It
faith failed not to provoke persecution. His followed that Mary could not be properly
life was more than once in danger, and he was termed the " mother of God," nor God the
forced to seek safety in flight (Chrys. I.e.). Word be strictly called the Son of David, that
Once at least when driven from Antioch he designation belonging, according to human
joined his spiritual father Meletius in exile at descent, to the temple in which the Divine Son
Getasa in Armenia, where, in 372, he met Basil tabernacled. Diodorus therefore distinguished
the Great Basil, Ep. 187). The intimate terms
( two Sons, the Son of God and the son of Mary,
of Diodorus and Basil are seen from the tone combined in the person of Christ. When,
of Basil's correspondence. then, the great Nestorian controversy set in,
Even more than for his undaunted defence Cyril clearly saw that, apart from the watch-
of the catholic faith Diodorus deserves the word OeordKos, which had not arisen in the
gratitude of the chmrch as head of the theo- days of Diodorus, what men called Nestorian-
logical school at Antioch. He pursued a ism was substantially the doctrine of Diodor-
healthy common-sense principle of exposition us as developed by Theodorus of Mopsuestia,
of Holy Scripture, which, discarding alike and that Nestorianism could only be fully
allegorism and coarse literalism, sought by the crushed by a condemnation of the doctrines of
help of criticism, philology, history, and other Diodorus as the fountain head. This con-
external resources, to develop the true meaning demnation was most difficult to obtain. No
of the text, as intended by the authors (Socr. name was held in so much reverence through-
H. E. vi. 3 Soz. H. E. viii. 2
; Hieron. de
; out the East. Cyril, however, was of far too
Vir. Illust. No. 119). determined a spirit to hesitate. If orthodox
Meletius, on being restored to Antioch in 378, views of the Incarnation were to be established,
appointed Diodorus bp. of Tarsus and metro- the authority of Diodorus must, at any cost
politan of the then undivided province of of enmity and unpopularity, be destroyed.
Cilicia (Facundus, viii. 5). His career as Every means was therefore taken to enforce,
bishop, according to Jerome [I.e.], was less dis- by the aid of the emperor and the patriarch
tinguished than as presbyter. He took part in Proclus, his condemnation, together with that
the great council of Antioch a.d. 379, which of his still more heretical pupil Theodorus.
failed to put an end to the Antiochene schism, Cyril himself, in a letter to the emperor, de-
as well as in the 2nd oecumenical council at scribed them in the harshest terms as the
Constantinople a.d. 381. By the decree of the fathers of the blasphemies of Nestorius (Theo-
emperor Theodosius, July 30, 381, Diodorus doret, t. v. p. 854), and in a letter to John of
was named as one of the orthodox Eastern Antioch denounced them as " going full sail, as
prelates, communion with whom was the test it were, against the glory of Christ." It is not
of orthodoxy (Cod. Theod. lib. xvi. tit. i. 3 ;
surprising that Diodorus began to be looked
t. vi. p. 9). Meletius having died during the upon with suspicion by those who had been
session of the council, Diodorus, violating the accustomed to regard him as a bulwark of the
compact made to heal the schism, united with faith, insomuch that Theodoret, when himself
Acacius of Beroea in consecrating Flavian as accused of Nestorian leanings, did not venture
DIOGNEtUS, EPISTLE TO DIOGNETUS, EPISTLE TO 257
to quote the words of Diodorus in his defence, they were appended, and the fact that it was
though he regarded him with reverence {aejiw), not directly to Justin Martyr, but to the
as " a holy and blessed father " (Theod. Ep. author of the address To Greeks that the
i6). In the hope of rehabilitating his credit, address To Diognetus was in the MS. ascribed,
Theodoret wrote a treatise to prove the ortho- were forgotten.
doxy of Diodorus, which led Cyril to peruse In the MS., again, the text given under the
them and to pronounce them categorically heading To Diognetus was broken into three
heretical (ib. Epp. 38, 52). All attempts, fragments by two clear breaks with marginal
however, to depreciate the authority of notes from the old i3th-cent. scribe, saying,
Diodorus, both by Cyril and Rabbulas of " Thus I found a break in the copy before me
Edessa, only exalted him in the estimation of also, it being very ancient." Of these two
the Nestorian party, and the opposition con- breaks the former, occurring near the end of
tributed to the formation of the independent c. vii., is ignored by Stephanus in his division
and still existing Nestorian church, which of the writing into chapters. Whether more
looks upon Diodorus and Theodorus with or less be missing, the writing comprised in
deepest veneration as its founders. The cc. vii.-x. is plainly the continuation of the
presbyter Maris of Hardaschir, in Persia, writing commenced in cc. i.-vii. In the con-
translated the works of Diodorus into Persian, cluding fragment (cc. xi. xii.), appended after
and they, together with those of Theodorus, the second break, the writer calls himself
were also translated into Armenian, Syriac, " disciple of apostles," and on this ground the
and other Oriental tongues (Neander, Ch. Hist. writer To Diognetus has been included among
vol. iv. pp. 209, 284 Clark's trans. Liberat.
;
the apostolic Fathers. But the contrast be-
Breviar. c. 10). Diodorus was naturally tween cc. i.-x. and cc. xi. xii. is so great that
anathematized by Eutyches and his followers. critics have concluded the final appended
Flavian III., also bp. of Antioch, was com- fragment to be no part of the writing to
pelled by the Monophysites to pass an ana- Diognetus, but the peroration of another
thema on the writings of Diodorus and Theo- treatise by another writer.
dorus in A.D. 499. The controversy respecting No other ancient copy of the Greek of any
the orthodoxy of Diodorus was revived in the of the writings published in 1592 has been
6th cent, by the interminable disputes about found but the writer To Greeks, with whom
;

" the Three Articles." There is a full defence the writer To Diognetus was in the MS. im-
of his orthodoxy by Facundus in his Defensio mediately identified, has been plainly distin-
Trium Capitulorum " (lib. iv. c. 2). Photius guished from Justin by the discovery and
asserts that Diodorus was formally condemned publication by Cureton in his Spicilegium
by the fifth oecumenical council held at Con- Syriacum from a 6th or 7th cent. MS. of a
stantinople A.D. 553, but it does not appear in Syriac version of an almost identical dis-
the acts of that council. Diodorus was a very coiurse ascribed to one " Ambrosius, a chief
copious author, the titles of between 20 and 30 man of Greece, who became a Christian, and
distinct works being enumerated in various all his fellow-councillors raised a clamour
catalogues. The whole have perished, except against him." We
may thus say that the true
some fragments, no less than 60 having been traditional writer To Greeks and To Diognetus
burnt, according to Ebed-Jesu, by the Arians. is a certain otherwise unknown Ambrosius,
His writings were partly exegetical, mainly convert like Justin from Hellenism to Chris-
controversial. He wrote comments on all the tianity —
the reply To Greeks, the assailants of
books of O. and N. T., except the Ep. to the the writer, being naturally followed by the
Hebrews, the Catholic Epistles (I. John how- response To Diognetus, the inquirer.
ever being commented on), and the Apoca- This conclusion is confirmed by internal
lypse. In these, according to Jerome {de Vir. evidence. The style of the two writings is
No. 119), he imitated the line of thought
Illust. identical. In each there is the same Attic
of Eusebius of Emesa, but fell below him in diction joined with the same Roman dignity.
eloquence and refinement. [e.v.] Nay, in each there is the same occurrence of
Diognetus, Epistle to. The Greek writing two contrasted styles, the same passage from
known under this name was first printed in the scornful vigour of the satirist to the joyous
1592 by Henricus Stephanus, along with a sweetness of the evangelist.
companion piece To Greeks, as hitherto un- " Come, be taught," says the writer To
known writings of Justin Martyr, taken by Greeks (c. v.) and it seems that Diognetus
;

him from a single faded exemplar. came. Common as the name was, the only
In his edition, as in the transcript in his Diognetus known to us after Christ was a
own handwriting extant at Leyden, the writing painting master who c. 133 had charge of the
To Greeks was not prefixed, but appended to young Marcus Aurelius. Whether this was the
the writing To Diognetus but in the MS. Diognetus who came to the Christian teacher
;

from which he took the pieces (identified bv we do not know. The writing addressed to
Gebhardt with that collated by Cunitz at him is not in form an epistle, it seems
Strasburg, where it perished in 1870) three rather to be a discourse delivered in a Christian
works, each ascribed by name to Justin, were Assembly into which the eminent inquirer had
followed by the two pieces Of the Same to found his way. His coming implied a triple
Greeks and Of the Same to Diognetus. The question: (i) " On what God relying, Christians
correctness of the ascription of each of these despise death and neither reckon those gods
two pieces to Justin was separately called in who are so accounted by the Greeks, nor ob-
question by subsequent critics but the con- serve any superstition of Jews" (ii) " What
; ;

nexion between the two pieces, the contrast the kindly affection is that they have one for
in style presented by both alike to the spurious another" and (iii) " What, in short, this new
;

or dubious works of Justin to which in the MS. race or practice might be that has invaded

17
258 DIOGNETUS, EPISTLE TO DIOGNETUS, EPISTLE TO
society now and no earlier." To the writer beginning," yet ever new.
(i)
" This is He that
replies in cc. i.-vii., first bidding the Greek look is ever reckoned a Son to-day." But what it
at his manufactured gods (c. i.) and
i , convicting is can be known only by taking up the cross
the J ews of vain oblations (c. iii.) and ungrateful and so coming to be with Christ in Paradise,
service (c. iv.) to the Giver of all to all, then " Whose tree if thou bearest fruit and if thou
(c. V.) portraying the wondrous life of Chris- choosest thou shalt eat those things that with
tians, at home yet strangers everywhere, like God are desired."
the soul in the body of the world (c. vi.), and The loss of intervening matter makes the
so (c. vii.) passing from the earthly things to the transition to the new region abrupt and
heavenly to tell how it was God Who implanted the contrast patent. " The Lord's Passover
the Word by the mission of the Maker of all, Cometh forth, and, teaching saints, the Word
sent as an imperial Son, in love, to be sent is gladdened." But the course is still straight-
again as Judge. So the inquirer is answered forward and the guide is not diverse. The
that the reasons for non-compliance with style is different only so far as is necessitated
Hellenism and Judaism are obvious, but the by the difference of subject. It exhibits the
Christians* God is the one God of the J ews, and same anarthrous use of nouns, the same ac-
their religion consists of purity and charity, and cumulation of clause on clause, not pursued
was founded by the mission of the Son, Whom too far ; the same unexpected turns at the
God will send again. At this point something close of the sentences ; the same union of
has dropped out. The argument may be dignity with sweetness, the same blending of
surmised to have continued after this fashion Pauline with Johannine teaching; the same
:

" An end of all things is the doctrine of your persistent subordination of doctrine to life.
Greek sages; but the Jews looked for a per- On these grounds we may venture to differ
petual earthly kingdom, and when Christ pro- from the wide consent of critics in imagining
claimed a kingdom not of this world, they a second nameless author.
slew Him, and yet He is not dead, and Chris- It is worth noting that an Ambrose, of the
tian worship is not to deny Him." For as consecration of Antioch, is said in a Syriac
resumed (c. vii.) after a break in the middle of tradition to have been the third primate of
a sentence, the discourse points to martyr- Edessa and the East (Burkitt, Early Eastern
doms as " signs," not of the return but " of Christianity, p. 29). The writer To Greeks and
the presence " of the Lord, as though saying, To Diognetus may have been this bringer of
" You see. He is still with us." Then pro- Greek Pauline Christianity to the regions be-
ceeding (c. viii.) to contrast the follies of yond Euphrates conquered by Trajan and
philosophy with the assurance wrought by the abandoned by Hadrian, and have been an-
Father's revelation of Himself to faith, he cestor of the friend of Origen and of the great
explains (c. ix.) how God waited to shew forth Milanese archbp. and of the legendary father
what He had prepared till unrighteousness had of King Arthur.
been made manifest, and then, when the time Probably an old copy exhibited three works

came, Himself took ou?r sins and gave His own of Ambrosius an avowal of Christianity, and
Son for us and would have us trust Him. So answers To Greeks and To Diognetus, each a
(c. X.) he passes from expounding " on what brave act as well as a solid work, the first now
God Christians rely" to expound "what the lost, the second a fine sample of a class of
love is that they bear one to another," the out- controversial works of which samples are
come of their love to Him Who first loved them. numerous, the third. To Diognetus, preserved
The first two questions of the inquirer are in fragments only, but unique, not apologetic
thus answered, and in answering them com- merely, but catechetical, a portraiture of early
pletely the third question, " What the new Christianity not in its manifestation only, but
institution might be," would be answered in its springs, bringing us to the gates of the
along with them ; but that answer seems not Paradise of God.
to be completed before the second break. It In free allied states like Antioch and Athens
could not be complete till it had been carried avowal of Christianity may have been toler-
further than merely saying that " it was God ated when not suffered in Roman or subject
Who implanted the Word," and that He did so regions. In the 2nd cent, the world was not
" when the time came." " The Word that yet all Roman.
appeared new " must have been " found old " ;
The date of the writings may be determined
and this is the answer that we find in the final with great probability, not with absolute
fragment (cc. xi. xii.) after the second break. certainty, except that, if genuine, they cannot
The style has become different. We find be post-Nicene. The picture of the church
ourselves listening to the peroration of a presented to Diognetus pretty plainly belongs
homily, before the withdrawal of the cate- to a date earlier than the accession of Com-
chumens and the celebration of the mysteries. modus. The chief school of Christian thought
It does not follow that the final fragment does would seem still to be at Athens, though on
not belong to the preceding discourse. If the eve of its transference to Alexandria by
Diognetus had shewn his desire for instruction Athenagoras. It is among the writings of
by coming into a Christian assembly, the whole Tatian, Melito, and Theophilus and the frag-
discourse may have been delivered before ments of Apollinaris, Abercius, etc., that these
such an audience as is addressed in the per- pieces seem most at home. The writer seems
oration at the close. We are brought into a to appear in his freshness beside Justin in his
new region. The satirist of superstition and ripeness, and to be the meeting-point of the
evangelist of atoning, justifying mercy is teachings of Justin and Marcion, as he is at
succeeded by a mystical believer in a Christ the point of departure of Irenaeus, Tertullian,
born anew in hearts of saints. The new thing Hippolytus, and Origen on the one hand, and
is portrayed as " that which was from the Praxeas, Noetus, and Sabellius on the other.
DIONYSIA DIONYSIUS 259
Lost in the crowd of predecessors whom Dionysius (i), Pseud o-Areopagita. Under
Irenaeus and Clement hardly ever name and the name of Dionysius the Areopagite there
merged in Justin's shadow, convinced that has passed current a body of remarkable
God alone can reveal Himself, and content to writings. Before shewing that the author of
be hidden in his Saviour's righteousness, the these writings was not the Dionysius converted
old writer has gradually emerged by virtue of by St. Paul (Acts xvii. 34), we must dis-
an inborn lustre, at once the obscurest and criminate both of them from a third Dionysius,
most brilliant of his contemporaries, and has the St. Denys of France. The identity of all
cast a glory on the early church while remain- three was popularly believed for many cen
ing himself unknown. turies, and even yet is maintained by some.
Authorities. —
Gallandi, ap. Migne, Pair. Gk. Was, then, the convert of St. Paul at Athens
ii. ii59ff. Bickersteth, Christian Fathers
;
the first apostle of France ? The answer
(1838) Dorner, Person of Christ, i. 260 fi.
;
would not seem doubtful from the statement
Hefele, Paires Apostolici (Tiibingen, 1842) of Sulpicius Severus, that the earliest martyrs
Neander, Church History, ii. 420, 425 (Bohn) in Gaul were under the reign of Aurelius (Sacr.
Westcott, Canon (ed. 1875), pp. 85 if. Bunsen, Hist. ii. 46), i.e. after a.d. 160
; and from the ;

Hippolytus, i. 187 ff., Analecta Antenicaena, i. circumstance that neither the old martyro-
103 ft'. Donaldson, Hist. Christ. Lit. ii. 126 logies nor the old French chroniclers contain
;

ff.; Davidson, Intro, to N. T. ii. 399 Har- any hint of the identity of the two. Gregory
;

nack, Patres Apostolici, i. 205 ff. (Leipz. 1875, of Tours (Hist. Franc, i. 30) fixes the coming
2nd ed. 1878) Cureton, Spicilegium Syriacum of St. Denj's into France as late as the reign of
;

(Lond. 1854) Ceillier, A uteurs sacres, i. 412 (ed. Decius, i.e. after a.d. 250
;
while Usuardus,
;

1865) 'Bigg, Origins of Christianity Lightfoot who wrote his Martyrologium for Charlemagne,
; ;

and Harmer, .ipost. Fathers, p. 487. An Eng. assigned Oct. 3 to the memory of the Areopa-
trans, of the Ep.to Diognetus is included in gite, and Oct. 9 to that of the patron saint of
the Ante-NiceneLib. and another by L. B. Rad- France. The reasons for believing St. Denys
ford is pub. cheaply by S.P.C.K. [e.e.b.] of France to be the author of these writings
Dionysia (l), virgin martyr at Lampsacus, are equally slight. Their style and subject-
A.D. 250. Seeing Nicomachus suddenly seized matter all betoken a philosophic leisure, not
with madness and dying in horror, after having the active life of a missionary in a barbarous
denied the faith under torture, and sacrificed country and a residence in the East is implied
;

to the heathen gods, Dionysia cried out, " Mis- in the very titles of those to whom they are
erable and most wretched man Why, for one addressed. It is the opinion of Bardenhewer
!

hour's respite, didst thou take to thyself un- (Patrol, p. 538) that the writings of Stigl-
ceasing and indescribable punishment " The raayr and Koch (see under Authorities, infra)
!

proconsul Optimus hearing her, asked if she have proved " that the Areopagitica were no-
were a Christian. " Yes," she answered, " and thing more than a composition written under
that is why I weep for this unhappy man, who an assumed name, and in reality dating from
loses eternal rest by not being able to suffer a about the end of the fifth century."
moment's pain." The proconsul dismissed We mav deal with the writings under (i) :

her with a brutal order. Next day, having External History (2) Nature and Contents.
;

succeeded in maintaining her chastity, she (i) It is generally admitted that the first
escaped, and joined Andrew and Paul, two unequivocal mention of them is in the records
Christians who were being stoned to death. of the conference at Constantinople in 532.
" I wish to die with you here," she said, " that The emperor Justinian invited Hypatius of
I may live with you in heaven " Optimus Ephesus, and other bishops of the orthodox
!

ordered her to be taken from Andrew and side, to meet in his palace the leaders of the
Paul, and beheaded, May 15, 250, the 2nd year Severians. During the debate, these alleged
of Decius. Ruinart, Act. Sine. Mart. p. 159 writings of the Areopagite were brought for-
;

Ceillier, ii. 118. [w.m.s.] ward by the latter in support of their Mono-
Dionysia (2), at Alexandria, a.d. 251, mother physite views and the objections of Hypatius
;

of manj' children, who, loving her Lord more have been preserved. If genuine, he asked,
than her children, died by the sword, along how could they have escaped the notice of
with the venerable lady Mercuria, without Cyril and others ? (Mansi, viii. col. 821) and ;

being tried by torture, as the prefect had this question has never been satisfactorily
succeeded so ill with Ammonarion that he was answered. Supposed traces of them have
ashamed to go on torturing and being defeated been pointed out in Origen and other in-
;

by women (Dion. Alex, ad Fab. ap. Eus. H. E. genious reasons, explaining their concealment
Vi- 41)- [E.B.B.] for five centuries, have been confuted again
Dionysia (3), St., a Christian martyr in the and again. Still, whatever their parentage,
5th cent. According to the narrative of Victor they are henceforward never lost sight of.
Vitensis, her contemporary, she was a lady of Writers of the school which had at first ob-
rare beauty in Africa, who preferred tortures, jected to them soon found how serviceable to
shameful indignities, and death to renouncing their own cause they might be made. Thus a
her faith a victim of the persecution of the chain of testimony begins to be attached to
;

orthodox or Catholic Christians bv Hunneric, them in unbroken continuity.


kmg of the Vandals. The date assigned for In the Western church we first find them
her martyrdom is 484. mentioned by pope Gregory the Great (c. 590) ;

See Victor Vitensis, de Persecutione Afri- but his manner of citing them makes it
cand, V. c. i ap. Migne, Patr. Lat. Ivii.
; probable that he only knew them by report.
;
Tillem., M^nojVes, t. xvi. (Paris, 1701, 4to); In any case, they did not become generally
Baronius, Annates Ecclesiastici, t. viii. p. 463 known in the West till after a.d. 827, when
(Lucae, 1741, fol.), [i.g.s.] Michael the Stammerer sent a copy to Louis
;;;

260 DIONYSIUS DIONYSIUS


le D6bonnaire, son of Charlemagne. The attacks on his own weak points, and to suggest
abbey of St. Denys, near Paris, was thought the filling up of deficiencies which in reality
the most fitting receptacle for such a treasure ;
he left unsupplied ? This last seems very
and its abbat, the superstitious and unprin- probable. But, if true, while our respect for
cipled Hilduin, compiled a collection of Areo- the intellectual completeness of the author's
pagitica in honour of the event. This work mind is increased, our opinion of his moral
professes to be based on documents then ex- straightforwardness must be diminished.
tant, but is described in equally unfavourable However, he is certainly entitled to the credit
terms by Sirmond and by Cave. In the next of his conception of such a theological system,
reign, that of Charles the Bald, a Latin trans, whether all the parts be duly filled in or not.
of all the Dionysian writings was made by the Limits of space do not here allow a minute
great scholar Joannes Erigena. It is first analysis of the extant works. The Heavenly
publicly mentioned by pope Nicholas I., in a Hierarchy opens with what sounds almost like
and is warmly
letter to Charles in 86i, praised the keynote of the whole, the text -n-daa
by Anastasius Bibliothecarius in 865. Sdffis dyadr], k.t.\. of J as. i. i?. The lan-
(2) The Dionysian writings consist of four
guage, in which the simple words of these
extant treatises : On
Heavenly Hierarchy
the Apostles are expanded and paraphrased, will
On the Ecclesiastical Hierarchy ; On the Names convey no bad idea of the generally turgid
of God ; On Mystic Theology after which ; style. To bring us to Himself, God graciously
come ten letters or fragments of letters. makes use of signs and symbols, and of inter-
This list, from one point of view, is com- vening orders of ministers, by whose means
plete as an exposition of the Dionysian system, we may be gradually raised to nearer com-
and is also in its proper order. For we may munion with Him. Such an organization he
take as its epitome the words of St. Paul with calls a Hierarchy " a sacred order, and

which the first sentence in the volume con- science, and activity, assimilated as far as
cludes :
" For of Him and to Him are all possible to the godlike, and elevated to the
things" (Rom. xi. 36). God, the centre to- imitation of God proportionately to the Divine
wards which all tend, and at the same time illuminations conceded to it " (Cel. Hier. iii.
the all-embracing circumference within which § I, tr. by Westcott). The members of the
all are included the constant streaming forth
; Heavenly Hierarchy are the nine orders of
from Him, like rays from the visible sun, of —
Angels the term Angel being sometimes used
divine influences whereby men are purified, alike of all the orders, and sometimes, in a
illumined, and drawn upwards to Himself more proper and restricted sense, of the lowest
man's powerlessness to know the real nature of the nine. The names of the nine orders
and being of God, while yet he may be drawn appear to be obtained by combining with the
near to Him, in the mystic communion of a more obvious Seraphim, Cherubim, Arch-
loving faith such is, very briefly, the burden angels, and Angels, five deduced from two
:

of the Dionysian strain. And if we take the passages of St. Paul, Eph. i. 21 and Col. i. 16.
de Divinis Nominibus as the central portion In each of these passages four names are men-
of the writings, and recognize the two Hier- tioned, of which three {&pxci-i, e^ovcrlai, Kvpio-
archies as one consecutive whole, we have TTjTes) are common to both, while one is pecu-
enough to fill up the outline sketched above. liar to each, dwd/j-eLS to the former, dpuvot to
In the Celestial and Ecclesiastical Hierarchies, the latter. The nine are subdivided into
with their ninefold orders of heavenly and of triads, ranged thus in descending order :

earthly ministrations, we have the means, the 1. Seraphim, Cherubim, Thrones.


machinery (so to speak), whereby' God com- 2. Dominations, Virtues, Powers.
municates Himself to man. In the Divina
3. Principalities, Archangels, Angels.
Nomina we have disclosed to us, so far as The long and important treatise On the
can be seen through veils and shadows, the Names
of God {llepi Oeiwv dvo/xdrui') has been
Fountain-head of all light and being, the object shewn by Stiglmayr and Koch to contain an
of all thought and desire. In the Mystic
extract from Proclus's treatise de Malorum
Theology we have the converse of the path Subsiiteiitia which has reached us in a Latin
;

marked out in the Hierarchies, the ascent of trans. It is an inquiry into the being and
the human soul to mystic union with God. attributes of God as indicated by the Divine
The three great sections of the Dionysian Names in Holy Scripture. These Names, like
writings thus answer very strikingly to the
all outward channels of spiritual knowledge,
three elements of which he makes his hierarchy
can reveal His real nature but very imper-
to consist : rd^ts, iiriffTrj/xr], and iv^pyeia wpos
fectly and even so, not without prayer,
;
TO OeoiLdes dcpoLov/j.^vT] (Eccl. Hier. iii. § i).
which, like the golden chain of Homer, lifts
Yet the author refers to a series of treatises,
us up to Heaven while we seem to be drawing
still more numerous than the preceding, as if
it down to earth or like the rope thrown
he thought them necessary for the completion
;

a rock, which enables


of his design. These are On Divine Hymns out to mariners fromship nearer to the rock,
:

to draw their
Symbolic Theology ; On the Objects of Intellect them
while they pull as if they would draw the
and Sense; Theological Outlines ; On the Soul The first
On the Just Judgment of God. To these are rock to them [Div. Nom. iii. § goodness, i).
the
added by Sixtus Senensis and others On the thing thus revealed is God's
:

of His being, which


Properties and Orders of Angels ; The Legal far-reaching effulgence
Hierarchy. streams forth upon all, like the rays of the sun
The question of these missing treatises is (ib. iv. § i). Evil is nothing real and positive,
'^Teprjai^ dpa
most perplexing. Did they ever exist ? If but a defect, a negation only :

so, what has become of them


Are they mere? iarl t6 KaKdv, Kal ^XXfii/'is, Kal dad^ueia, Kal
inventions of the author, designed to parry dav/xi-ierpia, k.t.X. [ib. iv. § 32)- As what we
DIONYSIUS DIONYSIUS 261

call cold is but a deficiency of heat or


;

Theology on our dyvwaia of God, and His
darkness, of light so what we call evil is a
;
transcendent nature. The third is a short
deficiency of goodness. When the sky grows fragment on the meaning of the word i^altpv-ns
dark, as evening sets in, that darkness is no- in Mai. iii. i, " The Lord shall suddenly
. . .

thing positive, superadded to what existed be- come to His temple," and its application to
fore : we are conscious of gloom merely from the Incarnation. The fourth, addressed, like
the disappearance of the light, which was the the three previous ones, to the monk Caius,
true existence {ib. iv. § 24)- This subject is treats brieflv of the Incarnation, and the
pursued in a very noble train of thought to nature of that human body with which Christ
some length, and is followed by a discussion of could walk upon the waters (cf. Div. Norn. ii.
still other names and titles, adapted to the 9). The fifth, to Dorotheus, is on the meaning
infirmity of human understanding, under of the divine darkness (6 6eios yv6(pos) spoken of
which God's attributes are made intelligible to in the Mystic Theology. The sixth, to Sosi-
us. That the author is conscious of his theory pater, teaches that labour is better spent in
of evil not being logically complete appears establishing truth than in confuting error.
from his briefly referring to another supposed The seventh is a much longer letter, addressed
treatise, ITept diKaiov Kal dciov 5iKaiwT7if,ioi' to Polycarp, in which he bids him answer the
{ib. iv. § 35), for a settlement of the question taunts' of the Sophist Apollophanes, by recall-
how far evil, being such as is described, de- ing the days when he and Dionysius were
serves punishment at the hands of God. fellow-students at Hierapolis, and his own
Of two legends, widely known in connexion remark when they beheld the darkness of the
with the name of Dionysius, from their inser- Crucifixion raPra,, w KoKe Aion'/crtf, deiuiv dfxoi-
:

tion in the Breviary of the Latin church, one I3ai Trpay/j.dTO}v. The exclamation
attributed to
must be noticed here, as found in the present Dionysius himself, as it appears in the Latin
work. When Dionysius was present with Breviary, Aut Dens naturae patitur, aut mundi
Timothy, to whom he is writing, and James, machina dissolvitttr, or, as it is given by Syn-
6 dSeXcpodeos, and Peter, i] Kopv(pala Kai wpfcr- gelusinhisL?7e,'Ofi7i'ai(rros iv aapKl Trdcrxft Bfos,
pvrdTT] tQv deoXuywv dKpoTrjs, and other dis- K.T.X., is not found in the Dionysian writings.
ciples, " for the spectacle of the body which The eighth letter, to a monk, Demophilus, is
was the beginning of life and the recipient of on gentleness and forbearance, and the topic
God " {iiri Tr}v d^av rod ^wapxi^KOV Kal 6eo56xov is illustrated by a dream which St. Carpus had
— al. (po}To56xov —
(rw/j.aTos {ib. iii. § 2) ), no one in Crete. The ninth, also a long letter, ad-
but the apostles surpassed Hierotheus, his dressed to Titus, bp. of Crete, refers to matters
preceptor, in the inspired hymns and praises treated in the Symbolic Theology. Many
which he uttered. This is generally consid- points are discussed in what to some would
ered to refer to a gathering of the apostles appear a strangely neologic spirit. The
round the deathbed of the Holy Virgin. The anthropomorphism of O.T., the bold meta-
language is vague, and the passage comes in phors of the Song of Songs (ra? tCv acr/xdrhiv
with singular abruptness, as a sequel to one irpoffvXovs Kai iraipiKas TroXi'waOeias), and the
on the power of prayer. In the paraphrase of like, can only be understood, he says, by true
Pachymeres, the names of the apostles are lovers of holiness, who come to the study of
omitted. The explanation of Barradas divine wisdom divested of every childish
(quoted by Hipler, ubi inf. p. 48 n.) is that the imagination {Trdaav ttjj' TraidapiujSri (pavTaalav
gathering round the 6€ot6ko<s really repre- iwi tQ}v iepQv crvfxjBoXixiv dirocTKeva^oinevois)- In
sents the assembly of believers for the recep- this letter we seem to see before us a disciple
tion of the Holy Eucharist, bending (as the of Philo. The tenth, and last, is a mere
words of one liturgy express it) " ante splen- fragment, addressed to St. John the Divine,
dida et theodocha signa cum timore inclinati." an exile in Patmos, foretelling his approaching
The short treatise on Mystic Theology in- release from confinement.
dicates the means of approaching more nearly
to God, previously set forth under the Divine sacris
Authorities. —
Isaac Casaubon, de Rebus
Eccl. Exercitt. xxi. (16 15) Jean ;

Names, by reversing the procedure adopted in Launoy, Varia de duobus Dionysiis (1660) ;

the Hierarchies. He whowould aspire to a truer J. Dallaeus, de Scriptis


quae circumfer- . . .

and more intimate knowledge of God must tmter (1666) P. F. Chifflet, Opuscula quatuor
;

rise above signs and symbols, above earthly (1679) ; Ussher, Disserlatio de Scriptis ap- . .

conceptions and definitions of God, and thus pended to his Historia Dogmatica (1690) ;

advance by negation, rather than by affirma- M. Lequien, Dissertatio Secunda, prefixed to


tion, (Cut' d(palpe(nv, not Kara, decnv. Even in tom. i. of Joannis Damasceni Op. (1712) Cave, ;

the Hierarchies {Cel. Hier. ii. § 3) Dionysius Script. Eccl. Hist. Lit. (1740) Brucker, Hist. ;

had spoken of dTr6(pacns as a surer way of Crit. tom. iii. (1766) J. L. Mosheirn, Com-
;

penetrating the divine mystery than KaTd<pacns, mentatio de Turbata per Recentiores Plaionicos
and now enforces the same truth by an illus- Ecclesia (1767); J. A. Fabricius, Biblioth.
tration which, if not taken directly from Graeca, tom. vii. (1801) J. G. Engelhardt,
;
de
Plotinus, presents a striking parallel to one Dionysio Areop. Plotinizante (1820) Milman, ;


used by him that of the sculptor, who, Lat. Christ, vol. vi. (1855) Dr. Franz Hipler,
;

striving to fashion a beautiful statue, chips Dionysius der Areop agite (Regensbiirg, 1861) ;

away the outer marble, and removes what B. F. Westcott, Essay on Dionysius the
was in fact an obstruction to his own ideal Areopagite in the Contemp. Rev- May 1867 ;

{Myst. Theol. c. ii. cf. Plotinus, de Pulchri-


;
Dean Colet, On the Hierarchies of Dionysius
tudine, ed. Creuzer, 18 14, p. 62). (1869) ; J. Fowler, Essay on the
works of St.
Of the Letters, the first two are little more Dionysius the Areopagite, in relation to Chris-
than detached notes on points of the Mystic tian art, in the Sacristy, Feb. 1872 H. Koch. ;
;

262 DIONYSIUS DIONYSIUS


in Theol.Quartalschrift, 1895 and i8g8 tents given by Eusebius, and a few fragments
Stislmayr in Hist. Jahrbiicher (1895). [j.h.l.] of the letter to the Roman church which,
Dionysius (2), St., apostle of France, and though very scanty, throw considerable light
first bp. of Paris. Concerning his identity and on the state of the church at the time.
era there are three principal opinions. Eusebius praises Dionysius for having given
(i) That he was Dionysius the Areopagite, a share in his " inspired industry " to those
formerly bp. of Athens, who came to Rome in foreign lands. A bp. of Corinth might
and was sent by Clement, bp. of Rome, to consider Lacedaemon and Athens as under his
preach in Gaul. This is the tradition of the metropolitan superintendence, but that he
Greek church, and of those of Gaul, Germany, should send letters of admonition to Crete,
Spain, and Italy. The corresponding legend, Bithynia, and Paphlagonia not only proves
shortly narrated in the Paris Martyrology, states the reputation of the writer, but indicates the
that his companions were Rusticus, a presbyter, unity of the Christian community. A still
and Eleutherus, a deacon, and that all three more interesting proof of this is furnished by
were put to death by the sword under Sisinnius the letter to the Roman church, which would
Fescenninus, prefect of Gaul. This is the seem to be one of thanks for a gift of money,
opinion of Flavins Lucius Dexter, d. 444 and in which he speaks of it as a custom of that
(Chronicon. Pair. Lat. xxxi. 270). church from the earliest times to send supplies
(2) That, although not the Areopagite, he to churches in every city to relieve poverty,
was sent by Clement or the successors of the and to support the brethren condemned to
apostles. This is held in a poem in honour of work in the mines, " a custom not only pre-
Dionysius, attributed with some probability served, but increased by the blessed bp.
to Venantius Fortunatus of Poitiers, who had Soter, who administered their bounty to the-
written a poem on the same subject commit- saints, and with blessed words exhorted the
ting himself to no opinion (Patr. Lat. Ixxxviii. brethren that came up as an affectionate father
72, 98). It is also supported by Pagius in his his children." The epithet here applied to
notes on Baronius. Soter is usually used of those deceased in
^3) That he was sent from Rome in the 3rd Christ ;
but there are instances of its applica-
cent., and suffered martyrdom c. a.d. 250. tion to living persons, and Eusebius speaks of
This is held by Sulpicius Severus, d. a.d. 410, him as still bishop when the letter of Diony-
and Gregory of Tours, d. 595. Sulpicius says, sius was written. This letter is remarkable
" Under Aurelius, son Antoninus, raged the
of also as containing the earliest testimony that
fifth persecution. Then first were martyr- St. Peter suffered martyrdom in Italy at the
doms seen in Gaul, for the religion of God was same time as St. Paul. The letters indicate
late in coming over the Alps " (Severi, Chroni- the general prevalence of episcopal govern-
con, ii. 32, Patr. Lat. xx. 147). Gregory (Hist, ment when they were written. In most of
of the Franks, bk. i. c. 28) speaking of the Decian
, them the bishop of the church addressed is
persecution, quotes the Hist. Passionis S. M. mentioned with honour Palmas in Pontus, ;

Saturnini " Under the consulship of Decius


: Philip and Pinytus in Crete, Soter at Rome.
and Gratus, as is held in faithful recollection, That to the Athenians reminds them of a
the state of Toulouse began to have a bishop, former bp. Publius, who had suffered martyr-
St. Saturninus, her first and chief. These were dom during persecutions which reduced that
the men sent to Tours, Gatianus the bishop
: church very low, from which condition it was
;

to Aries, Trophimus the bishop to Toulouse, revived by the zeal of Quadratus, the success-
;

Saturninus the bishop to Paris, Dionysius


;
or of Pubiius. This form of government was
the bishop, etc. Of these the blessed Diony- then supposed to date from apostolic times,
sius, bishop of the Parisians, afflicted with for in the same letter Dionysius the Areopagite
many pains for the name of Christ, ended this is counted as the first bp. of Athens but the ;

present life under the sword." Probably, importance of the bishop seems to be still
therefore, he died under the emperor Aurelian subordinate to that of his church. The letters,
in A.D. 272 (cf. Gall. Christ, vii. 4). [w.m.s.] including that to Rome, are each addressed to
Dionysius (3), bp. of Corinth, probably the the church, not to the bishop andSoter's own ;

successor of Primus, placed by Eusebius in his letter, like Clement's former one, was ^^Titten
Chronicle under a.d. 171 (see also Ens. H. E. not in his own name, but that of his church
ii. 25, iii. 4, iv. 21, 23,
35 Hieron. Catal. 27). (iifxCiv TTfv iwicrToXriv). The letters, indeed, of
;

He was the writer of certain pastoral letters, Dionysius himself were writ ten in his own name,
which gained so much authority in his own and he uses the ist pers. sing, in speaking of
lifetime that heretics (probably the followers of them, but adds that they were wTitten at the
Marcion) found it worth while, as he complains, request of brethren. Eusebius mentions two,
to circulate copies falsified by interpolations Bacchylides and Elpistus, at whose instance
and omissions. Eusebius mentions having that to the churches of Pontus was written.
met with 8 of these letters viz. seven which — The letters also illustrate the value attached
he calls " Catholic Epistles," addressed to by Christians to their sacred literature.
Lacedemon, Athens, Nicomedia, Gortyna and Dionysius informs the church of Rome that
other churches in Crete, Amastris and other the day on which he wrote, being the Lord's
churches in Pontus, Cnossus, and Rome and day, had been kept holy, and that they had
;

one to " his most faithful sister Chrysophora." then read the letter of the Roman church, and
Probably the letters were already collected would continue from time to time to read it for
into a volume and enumerated by Eusebius in their instruction, as they were in the habit of
the order they occurred there, or he would reading the letter formerly wxitten from the
probably have mentioned the two Cretan same church by the hand of Clement and ;

letters consecutively. Nothing remains of speaking of the falsification of his own letters,
them, except the short account of their con- he adds, " No marvel, then, that some have
DIONYSIUS DIONYSIUS OF ALEXANDRIA 263
attempted to tamper with the Scriptures of the have been before the Paschal disputes in a.d.
Lord, since they have attempted it on writings 198, when we find Palmas of Pontus still
not comparable to them {ov Toiavrais)-" Thus alive, but a new bishop (Bacchylus) at Corinth.
we learn that it was then customary to read The Greek church counts Dionysius among
sacred books in the Christian assemblies that
;
martyrs, and the Menaea name the sword as
this practice was not limited to our canonical the instrument of his death but there is no
;

books that attempts were made by men re-


; authority for his martyrdom earlier than
garded as heretics to corrupt these writings, Cedrenus, i.e. the end of the nth cent. The
and that such attempts were jealously guarded Roman church only counts him among con-
against. The value attached by Christians to fessors. The abbey of St. Denis in France
writings was regulated rather by the character claimed to be in possession of the body of
of their contents than by the dignity of the Dionysius of Corinth, alleged to have been
writer ; for while there is no trace that the brought from Greece to Rome, and given them
letter of Soter thus honoured at Corinth passed in 1215 by Innocent III. The pope's bull is
beyond that church, the letter of Dionysius given bv the Bollandists under April 8. See
himself became the property of the whole Routh, 'Rel. Sac. (2nd ed.), i. 178-201. [g.s.]
Christian community. But we learn the pre- Dionysius (6) of Alexandria. This " great
eminent authority enjoyed by certain books, bishop of Alexandria" (Eus. H. E. vi. Praef.)
called the Scriptures of the Lord, which we and " teacher of the catholic church " (Athan.
cannot be wrong in identifying with some of de Sent. Dion. 6), was born, apparently, of a
the writings of our N.T. Dionysius, in the wealthy and honourable family (Eus. H. E.
very brief fragments remaining, shews signs vii. II, and Valesius ad loc). He was an old
of acquaintance with the St. Matt., the Acts, man in a.d. 265 (Eus. H. E. vii. 27), and a
I. Thess., and the Apocalypse. There is, there- presbyter in a.d. 233 (Hieron. de Vir. III. 69).
fore, no reason for limiting to the O.T. the His parents were Gentiles, and he was led to
" expositions of the divine Scriptures," which examine the claims of Christianity by private
Eusebius tells us were contained in the letter study {Ep. Dion. ap. Eus. H. E. vii. 7). His
of Dionysius to the churches of Pont us. In conversion cost him the sacrifice of " worldly
speaking of attempts to corrupt the Scriptures, glory " (Eus. H. E. vii. 11) ; but he found in
IDionysius probably refers to the heresy of Origen an able teacher (ib. vi. 29) and Dionysius
;

Marcion, against which, we are told, he wrote remained faithful to his master to the last.
in his letter to the church of Nicomedia, " de- In the persecutions of Decius he addressed a
fending the rule of truth." We cannot lay letter to him On Persecution {ib. vi. 46), doubt-
much stress on a rhetorical passage where less as an expression of sympathy with his
Jerome {Ep. ad Magnum, 83) includes Diony- sufferings (c. a.d. 259), and on the death of
sius among those who had applied secular Origen (a.d. 253) wrote to Theotecnus bp. of
learning to the refutation of heresy, tracing Caesarea in his praise (Steph. Gob. ap. Phot.
each heresy to its source in the writings of the Cod. 232). Dionysius, then a presbyter,
philosophers. Dionysius had probably also succeeded Heraclas as head of the Catechetical
Marcionism in view, when he exhorted the School, at the time, as the words of Eusebius
church of Gortyna " to beware of the perver- imply, when Heraclas was made bp. of Alex-
sion of heretics," for we are told that its bp. andria, a.d. 232-233 (Eus. I.e.). He held this
Philip had found it necessary to compose a office till he was raised to the bishopric, on the
treatise against Marcion. We may see traces death of Heraclas, a.d. 247-248, and perhaps
of the same heresy in the subjects treated of retained it till his death, a.d. 265. His epis-
in the letter to the churches of Pontus (the copate was in troubled times. A popular out-
home of Marcion), to which Dionysius gave break at Alexandria (a.d. 248-249) anticipated
instructions concerning marriage and chastity by about a year (Eus. H. E. vi. 41) the perse-
(marriage having been proscribed by Marcion), cution under Decius (a.d. 249-251). Diony-
and which he also exhorted to receive back sius fled from Alexandria, and, being after-
those who returned after any fall, whether into wards taken by some soldiers, was rescued by
irregularity of living or into heretical error. a friend, escaping in an obscure retirement
But the rigorist tendencies here combated from further attacks. In the persecution of
were exhibited also, not only among the then Valerian, a.d. 257, he was banished, but con-
rising sects of the Encratites and Montan- tinued to direct and animate the Alexandrian
ists, but by men of undoubted orthodoxy. church from the successive places of his exile.
Writing to the Cnossians Dionysius exhorts His conduct on these occasions exposed him to
Pinytus the bp., a man highly commended ungenerous criticism, and Eusebius has pre-
by Eusebius for piety, orthodoxy, and learn- served several interesting passages of a letter
ing, not to impose on the brethren too heavy {c. A.D. 258-259), in which he defends himself
a burden of chastity, but to regard the weak- with great spirit against the accusations of
ness of the many. Eusebius reports Pinytus a bp. Germanus {ib. vi. 40, vii. 11). On the
as replying with expressions of high respect accession of Gallienus, a.d. 260, Dionysius was
for Dionysius, which were understood by allowed to return to Alexandria {ib. vii. 13, 21),
Rufinus to imply an adoption of his views. where he had to face war, famine, and pestil-
But he apparently persevered in his own ence {ib. vii. 22). In a.d. 264-265 he was
opinion, for he exhorts Dionysius to impart invited to the synod at Antioch which met to
to his people some more advanced instruction, consider the opinions of Paul of Samosata.
lest if he fed them always with milk instead
of His age and infirmities did not allow him to
with more solid food, they should continue in go, and he died shortly afterwards (a.d. 265)
the state of children. {ib. vii. 27, 28 Hieron. de Vir. III. 69).
We are not told anything of the time or ;

Dionysius was active in controversy, hut


manner of the death of Dionysius. It must always bore himself with prudence. In this
264 DIONYSIUS OF ALEXANDRIA DIONYSIUS
spirit he was anxious to deal gently with The fragments of his letters are, however,
the " lapsed " (Eus. H. E. vi. 42) he pressed ; the most interesting extant memorials of his
upon Novatian the duty of self-restraint, for work and character and of his time and ;

the sake of the peace of the church, a.d. 251 Eusebius, with a true historical instinct, has
(ib. vii. 45 Hieron. I.e.)
; and with better
; made them the basis of the sixth and seventh
results counselled moderation in dealing with books of his history. The following will
the rebaptism of heretics, in a correspondence shew the wide ground covered

:

with popes Stephen and Sixtus (a.d. 256-257) A.D. 251. To Domitius and Didymus. Per-
(Eus. H. E. vii. 5, 7, 9). His iast letter (or sonal experiences during persecution (Eus.
letters) regarding Paul of Samosata seem to H. E. vii. 11).
have been written in a similar strain. He A.D. 251-252. —
To Novatian, to the Roman
charged the assembled bishops to do their Confessors, to Cornelius of Rome, Fabius of
duty, but did not shrink from appealing to Antioch, Conon of Hermopolis and to ;

Paul also, as still fairly within the reach of Christians in Alexandria, Egypt, Laodicaea,
honest argument (Theod. Haer. Fab. ii. 8). In Armenia, on discipline and repentance, with
one instance Dionysius met with immediate pictures from contemporary history {ib. vi.
success. In a discussion with a party of Chili- 41, and vii. 45).
asts he brought his opponents to abandon their A.D. 253-257. —
To Stephen of Rome, the
error (Eus. H. E. vii. 24). His own orthodoxy, Roman presbyters Dionysius and Philemon,
however, did not always remain unimpeached. Sixtus II. of Rome on Rebaptism (ib. vii.
When controverting the false teaching of Sa- 4, 5, 7, 9)-
bellius, the charge of tritheism was brought A.D. 258-263. —To Germanus : incidents jn
against him by some Sabellian adversaries, persecution. Against Sabellians. A series o^
and entertained at first by his namesake festal letters, with pictures of contemporary
Dionysius of Rome. Discussion shewed that history (ib. vii. 11, 22 ff., 26).
one ground of the misunderstanding was the A.D. 264. —
To Paul of Samosata (vi. 40).
ambiguity of the words used to describe To these, of some of which only the titles
" essence " and " person," which the two remain, must be added an important canonical
bishops took in different senses. Dionysius of letter to Basilides, of uncertain date, discussing
Rome regarded vTrdaraais as expressing the various questions of discipline, and especially
essence of the divine nature Dionysius of;
points connected with the Lenten fast (cf.
Alexandria as expressing the essence of each Dittrich, pp. 46 ff.). All the fragments repay
divine person. The former therefore affirmed careful study. They are uniformly inspired by
that to divide the vwoaracrLS was to make sep- sympathy and large-heartedness. His criti-
arate gods the latter affirmed with equal
;
cism on the style of the Apocalypse is perhaps
justice that there could be no Trinity unless unique among early writings for clearness and
each vTrdcrraa-is was distinct. The Alexandrine scholarly precision (Eus. H. E. vii. 25).
bishop had, however, used other phrases, The most accessible and complete collection
which were claimed by Arians at a later time of his remains is in Migne's Patr. Gk. x. pp.
as favouring their views. Basil, on hearsay, 1233 ff., 1575 ff., to which must be added
as it has been supposed (Lumper, Hist. Pat- Pitra, Spicil. Solesm. i. 15 ff. A full mono-
rum, xiii. 86 f.), admitted that Dionysius graph on Dionysius by- Dittrich (Freiburg,
sowed the seeds of the Anomoean heresy (£/>. 1867) supplements the arts, in Tillemont,
i. 9), but Athanasius with fuller knowledge
Marechal, I umper, Moehler. An Eng. trans,
vindicated his perfect orthodoxy. Dionysius of his works is in the Ante-Kicene Ltb.. and his
has been represented as recognizing the supre- Letters, etc.,have been ed. by Dr. Feltoe for
macy of Rome in the defence which he made. the Camb. Patristic Texts (1Q04). [r.f.w.]
But the fragments of his answer to his name- Dionysius (7), bp. of Rome; a Greek by
sake (Athan. de Sent. Dionysii, (tr^cFTdXe birth, consecrated July 22, a.d. 259, on the
Aiovv(7i({i SrfKuxrai for the use of (TnaT^Wio
• • •
death of Xystus, in the persecution of Vale-
see Eus. H. E. vi. 46, etc.) shew the most com- rian. His efforts against heresy are re-
plete and resolute independence and there;
corded. When Dionysius of Alexandria (q.v.)
is nothing in the narrative of Athanasius which was accused of holding doctrines akin to those
implies that the Alexandrine bishop recog- of Sabellius, the Roman Dionysius wrote to
nized, or that the Roman bishop claimed, any him, and extracted so satisfactory a defence
dogmatic authority as belonging to the im- that he declared him purged of suspicion
perial see. To say that a synod was held upon (Athan. Ep. de Sent. Dionvs. Opp- i- 252 see ;

the subject at Rome is an incorrect interpreta- an Eng. trans, of the Fragm. against Sabellius
tion of the facts. in Ante-Nicene Lib.). In 264 the Alexandrian
Dionysius was a prolific writer. Jerome and Roman Dionysii acted together with the
(I.e.) has preserved a long but not exhaustive council of Antioch in condemning and degrad-
catalogue of his books. Some important frag- ing Paul of Samosata. Dionysius of Rome
ments remain of his treatises On Nature (Eus. died Dec. 26, 269. [g.ii.m.]
'

Praep. Ev. xiv. 23 ff.), and On the Promises, in Dionysius surnamed Exiguus because
(19),
refutation of the Chiliastic views of Nepos of his humbleness of heart, was a Scythian by
(Eus. H. E. iii. 28, vii. 24, 25) of his Refuta-
; birth, and a monk in the Western church under
tion and Defence, addressed to Dionysius of the emperors Justin and Justinian. To him
Rome, in reply to the accusation of false teach- we owe the custom of dating events from the
ing on the Holy Trinity (Athan. de Sent. birth of our Saviour, though he is now acknow-
Dionysii ;de Synodis, c. 44 de Deer. Syn.
; ledged to have placed the era four years too
Nic. c. 25) of his Commentaries on Eccle-
; late. His collection of canons laid the foun-
siastes and on St. Luke, and of his books dation of canon law. He knew Latin and
Against Sabellius (Eus. Praep. Ev. vii. 19). Greek fairly though it is obvious that neither
;
DIONYSIUS DIOSCORUS 265

was his vernacular. His Latin translations Gelasius, he says himself, he had never seen in
form the bulk of his extant works. Cassio- life; in other words, he had never been at
dorus speaks of his moral and intellectual Rom.e up to Gelasius's death. By this pub-
qualities with well-deserved praise. His per- lication a death-blow was given to the false
formances were not original discoveries, but decretals of the Pseudo-Isidore, centuries
improvements on those of others. before their appearance. His attestation
I. The period called after him was borrowed of the true text and consequent rendering of
from Victorius of Aquitaine, who flourished the 6th Nicene canon, his translating the 9th
ICO years earlier, and is said to have invented of Chalcedon into plain Latin, after suppress-
it. It is a revolution of 532 years, produced ing the 28th, which, as it was not passed in
by multiplying the solar cycle of 28 by the full council he could omit with perfect honesty,
lunar of 19 years. It is called sometimes and, most of all, the publicity which he first
" recapitulatio Dionysii." A
note to § 13 of gave to the canons against transmarine ap-
the preliminary dissertation to I'Art de verif. peals in the African code and to the stand
les dates shews how he improved on his pre- made by the African bishops against the en-
decessor. His cycle was published in the croachments of pope Zosimus and his succes-
last year of the emperor Justin, a.d. 527. It sors in the matter of Apiarius, are historical
began with March 25, now kept as the festival stumbling-blocks which are fatal to the papal
of the Annunciation and from this epoch all
; claims. Misquotations of the Sardican canons,
the dates of bulls and briefs of the court of by which those claims were supported, are,
Rome are supposed to run (Butler's Lives of moreover, exposed by his preservation of them
the Saints, Oct. 15 note to the Life of St.
: in the language in which he avers they were
Teresa). His first year had for its characters published. Aloisius Vincenzi, writing on
the solar cycle 10, the lunar 2, and the Roman papal infallibility (de Sacra Monarchid, etc.
indiction 4, thereby proclaiming its identity 1875), is quite willing to abandon the Sardican
with the year 4714 of the Julian period, which canons in order to get rid also of the African
again coincided with the 4th year of the 194th co'le, which is a thorn in his side. Te.s.ff.I
Olympiad, and the 753rd of the building of Dioscorus (1), patriarch of Alexandria, suc-
Rome. It was adopted in Italy soon after its ceeded Cyril about midsummer 444, receiving
publication in France perhaps a century later.
; consecration, according to one report (Mansi,
In England it was ordained a.d. 816, at the vii. 603), from two bishops only. He had served
synod of Chelsea, that all bishops should date as C^Tii's archdeacon. Liberatus says that he
their acts from the Incarnation. had never been married. It is difficult to har-
II. In his letter to bp. Stephen, to whom monize the accounts of his character. Theodoret,
he dedicates his collection of Canons, he admits whose testimony in his favour cannot be sus-
the existence of an earlier, but defective, Latin pected, declared in a letter to Dioscorus, soon
translation, of which copies have been after his consecration, that the fame of his
printed and named, after his naming of it, virtues, and particularly of his modesty and
Prisca Versio by Justellus and others. His humility, was widely spread (Ep. 60) ;on the
own was a corrected edition of that earlier other hand, after he had involved himself in
version, so far as regards the canons of the Monophysite heresy, he was accused of
Nicaea, Ancyra, Neo-Caesarea, Gangra, An- having gravely misconducted himself in the
tioch, Laodicea, and Constantinople 165 in — first years of his episcopate (Mansi, vi. 1008).
all — togetherwith 27 of Chalcedon all : According toadeacon, Ischyrion, Dioscorus had
originally published in Greek, and all, except laid waste property, inflicted fines and exile,
the Laodicean, already translated in the Prisca bought up and sold at a high price the wheat
Versio. The Laodicean, unlike the rest, are sent by the government to Libya, appropriated
given in an abbreviated form, and the chrono- and grossly misspent money left by a lady
logical order is interrupted to place the named Peristeria for religious and charitable
Nicene canons first. He specifies as having purposes, received women of notorious char-
been translated by himself the 50 so-called acter into his house, persecuted Ischyrion as
canons of the Apostles, which stand at the a favourite of Cyril's, ruined the little estate
head of his collection, which he admits were which was his only support, sent a " phalanx
not then universally received and, as having ; of ecclesiastics, or rather of ruffians," to put
been appended by himself, the Sardican and him to death, and, after his escape, again
African canons, which he says were published sought to murder him in a hospital in proof,
;

in Latin, and with which his collection ends. Ischyrion appealed to six persons, one of
His collection speedily displaced that of the whom was bath-keeper to Dioscorus (ib. 1012).
Prisca. Cassiodorus, his friend and patron, According to a priest named Athanasius,
writes of it within a few years of his decease, Cyril's nephew, Dioscorus, from the outset of
" Quos hodie usu ecclesia Romana complec-
his episcopate (" which he obtained one knows
titur " and adds, " Alia quoque multa ex
; not how," says the petitioner), harassed him
Graeco transtulit in Latinam, quae utilitati and his brother by using influence with the
possunt ecclesiasticae convenire " (de Inst. court, so that the brother died of distress, and
Div. Litt. c. 23). It seems certain, from what Athanasius, with his aunts, sister-in-law, and
Cassiodorus says, that Dionvsius either trans- nephews, were bereft of their homes by the
lated or revised an earlier translation of the patriarch's malignity. He himself was de-
official documents of the 3rd and 4th councils, posed, without any trial, from the priesthood,
as well as the canons of the ist and 2nd. and became, perforce, a wanderer for years.
III. He published all the decretal epistles According to a layman named Sophronius,
of the popes he could discover from Siricius, Dioscorus hindered the execution of an im-
who succeeded Damasus, a.d. 384, to Anas- perial order which Sophronius had obtained
tasjus II., who succeeded Gelasius, a.d. 496. for the redress of a grievous wrong. " The
266 DIOSCORUS DIOSCORUS
country," he said, " belonged to him rather judgment. Theodosius, influenced by his wife
than to the sovereigns " {twv KparovvToiv). and his chamberlain, issued letters (Mar. 30,
Sophronius averred that legal evidence was 449), ordering the chief prelates (patriarchs,
forthcoming to prove that Dioscorus had as we may call them, and exarchs) to repair,
usurped, in Egypt, the authority belonging to with some of their bishops, to Ephesus by
the emperor. He added that Dioscorus had Aug. I, 449 (Mansi, vi. 587).
taken away his clothes and property, and This council of evil memory on which Leo —
compelled him to flee for his life and he afterwards fastened the name of " Latrocin-

;

charged him, further, with adultery and blas- ium," or gang of robbers met on Aug. 8, 449,
phemy (i6. 1029). Such accusations were then in St. Mary's church at Ephesus, the scene of
so readily made —
as the life of St. Athanasius the third general council's meeting in 431

himself shews that some deduction must be 150 bishops being present. Dioscorus pre-
;

made from charges brought against Dioscorus sided, and next to him Julian, or Julius, the
in the hour of his adversity and wrongs done
; representative of the " most holy bishop of the
by his agents may have been in some cases Roman church," then Juvenal of Jerusalem,
unfairly called his acts. Still, it is but too —
Domnus of Antioch, and his lowered position
likely that there was sufficient truth in them indicating what was to come Flavian of Con- —
to demonstrate the evil effects on his character stantinople (ib. 607). The archbp. of Alex-
of elevation to a post of almost absolute andria shewed himself a partisan throughout.
power for such, in those days, was the great
;
He did indeed propose the acceptance of Leo's
" evangelical throne." We find him, before letter to the council, a letter written at the
the end of his first year, in correspondence same time as, and expressly referring to, the
with pope Leo the Great, who gave directions, as famous " Tome" but it was only handed in,
;

from the see of St. Peter, to the new successor not read, Juvenal moving that another im-
of St. Mark ; writing, on June 21, 445, that perial letter should be read and recorded.
" it would be shocking (ne/as) to believe that The president then intimated that the council's
St. Mark formed his rules for Alexandria business was not to frame a new doctrinal
otherwise than on the Petrine model " (Ep. formulary, but to inquire whether what had
11). In 447 Dioscorus appears among those lately appeared —
meaning, the statements of
who expressed suspicion of the theological Flavian and bp. Eusebius on the one hand,
character of Theodoret, who had been much those of Eutyches on the other were accord- —
mixed up with the party of Nestorius. It was
rumoured that, preaching at Antioch, he and Ephesus — " two
ant with the decisions of the councils of Nicaea
councils in name," said
had practically taught Nestorianism and ;
he, "but one in faith" [ib. 628). Eutyches
Dioscorus, hearing this, wrote to Domnus, bp. was then introduced, and made his statement,
of Antioch, Theodoret's patriarch whereupon ;
beginning, " I commend myself to the Father,
Theodoret wrote a denial {Ep. 83) ending with the Son, and the Holy Ghost, and the true
an anathema against all who should deny the verdict of yoiur justice." After he had finished
holy Virgin to be Theotokos, call Jesus a mere his address, Flavian desired that Eusebius,
man, or divide the one Son into two. Dios- who had been his accuser, should be called in
corus still assumed the truth of the charge and heard. Elpidius, the imperial commis-
(Theod. Ep. 86), allowed Theodoret to be sioner, vetoed this proposal on the ground that
anathematized in church, and even rose from the judges of Eutyches were now to be judged,
his throne to echo the malediction, and sent and that his accuser had already fulfilled his
some bishops to Constantinople to support task, " and, as he thought, successfully " to :

him against Theodoret. let him speak now would be a cause of mere
Then, in Nov. 448, the aged Eutyches, disturbance (ib. 645). This unjudicial view
archimandrite of Constantinople and a ve- of the case was supported by Dioscorus.
hement enemy of Nestorianizers, was accused Flavian was baffled, and the council resolved
by Eusebius, bp. of Dorylaeum, before a to hear the acts of the synod of Constantinople
council of which Flavian was president, with which had condemned Eutyches. The epis-
an opposite error. He clung tenaci(5ush' to copal deputy of Leo, with his companion the
the phrase, " one incarnate nature of God the deacon Hilarus, urged that " the pope's
Word," which Cyril had used on the authority letter " (probably including the " Tome " in
of St. Athanasius but neglected the qualifica-
; this proposal) should be read first, but this
tions and explanations by which Cyril had was overruled ; Dioscorus moved that the
guarded his meaning. Thus, by refusing to " acts " should be first read, and then the
admit that Christ, as incarnate, had " two letter of the bp. of Rome. The reading
natures," Eutyches appeared to his judges to began {ib. 649). When the passage was
have revived, in effect, the Apollinarian heresy reached in which Basil of Seleucia and Seleucus
— to have denied the distinctness and verity of Amasia had said that the one Christ was in
of Christ's manhood and he was deprived
; two natures after the incarnation, a storm of
of his priestly office, and excommunicated. wrath broke out. " Let no one call the Lord
His patron, the chamberlain Chrj'saphius, '
two ' after imion
the Do not divide
!

applied to Dioscorus for aid, promising to the imdivided Seleucus was not bp. of
!

support him in all his designs if he would Amasia This ! is Nestorianism." " Be quiet
take up the cause of Eutyches against Flavian for a little," said Dioscorus " let us hear some
;

(Niceph. xiv. 47). Eutyches himself wrote more blasphemies. Why are we to blame
to Dioscorus, asking him " to examine his Nestorius only ? There are many Nestorius-
cause " (Liberal, c. 12), and Dioscorus, es " {ib. 685). The reading proceeded as far
zealous against all anti-Cyrilline tendencies in as Eusebius's question to Eutyches, " Do you
theology, wrote to the emperor, urging him own two natures after the incarnation ? "
to call a general council to review Flavian's Then arose another storm " The holy synod
:
DIOSCORUS DIOSCORUS 267
exclaimed, '
Away
with Eusebius, burn him, munication incurred at Constantinople. The
let him be burnt alive Let him be cut in doctrinal decisions of the Ephesian council of

!

"
two be divided, even as he divided !
'
431, in its first and sixth sessions, were then
" Can you endure," asked Dioscorus, " to hear read. Dioscorus proposed that these de-
of two natures after the incarnation ?
"
cisions, with those of Nicaea, should be re-
" Anathema to him that says it " was the ! cognized as an unalterable standard of ortho-
reply. " I have need of your voices and your doxy ; that whoever should say or think
hands too," rejoined Dioscorus " if any one ; otherwise, or should unsettle them, should be
cannot shout, let him stretch out his hand." put under censure. " Let each one of you
Another anathema rang out {ib. 737). An- speak his mind on this." Several bishops
other passage, containing a statement of belief assented. Hilarus, the Roman deacon, testi-
by Eutyches, was heard with applause. " We fied that the apostolic see reverenced those
accept this statement," said Dioscorus. " This decisions, and that its letter, if read, would
is the faith of the Fathers," exclaimed the prove this. Dioscorus called in some secre-
bishops. " Of what faith do you saj' this ? " taries, who brought forward a draft sentence
asked Dioscorus. " Of Eutvches's for Euse- : of deposition against Flavian and Eusebius,
bius is impious " {aaejSris. ib. 740). Similar on the ground that the Ephesian council had
approbation was given to another passage enacted severe penalties against any who
containing the characteristic formula of Euty- should frame or propose any other creed than
chianism " I confess that our Lord was of
: the Nicene. Flavian and Eusebius were de-
two natures before the incarnation but after ;
clared to have constructively committed this
the incarnation [i.e. in Him as incarnate] I offence by " unsettling almost everything, and
confess one nature." " We all agree to this," causing scandal and confusion throughout the
said Dioscorus. " We agree," said the coun- churches." Their deposition was decided up-
cil (ib. 744). Presently came a sentence in on (ib. 907). Onesiphorus, bp. of Iconium,
which Basil of Seleucia had denounced the with some others, went up to Dioscorus,
denial of two natures after the incarnation as clasped his feet and knees, and passionately
equivalent to the assertion of a commixture entreated him not to go to such extremities.
and a fusion. This aroused once more the " He has done nothing worthy of deposition
zealots of the Alexandrian party one bishop ... if he deserves condemnation, let him be
; .

sprang forward, shouting, " This upsets the condemned." " It must be," said Dioscorus
whole church " The Egyptians and the
! in answer " if my tongue were to be cut out ;

monks, led by Barsumas, cried out, " Cut him for it, 1 would still say so." They persisted,
in two, who says two natures He is a Nes- and he, starting from his throne, stood up on
!

torian " ! Basil's nerves gave way he lost, the footstool and exclaimed, " Are you get-
;

as he afterwards said, his perceptions, bodily ting up a sedition ? Where are the counts ? "
and mental (ib. 636). He began to say that Military officers, soldiers with swords and
he did not remember whether he had uttered sticks, even the proconsul with chains, entered
the obnoxious words, but that he had meant at his call. He peremptorily commanded the
to say, " If you do not add the word incar- bishops to sign the sentence, and with a fierce
'

nate to nature,' as Cyril did, the phrase one gesture of the hand exclaimed, " He that does
' ' '

nature' implies a fusion." Juvenal asked not choose to sign must reckon with me." A
whether his words had been wrongly reported scene of terrorism followed. Those prelates ;

he answered helplessly, " I do not recollect " who were reluctant to take part in the de-
(ib. 748). He seems to have been coerced into position were threatened with exile, beaten
a formal retractation of the phrase " two by the soldiers, denounced as heretics by the
natures " but he added " hypostases " as partisans of Dioscorus, and by the crowd of
;

explanatory of " natures," and professed to fanatical monks (ib. vii. 68) who accompanied
" adore the one nature of the Godhead of the Barsumas, until they put their names to a
Only-begotten, who was made man and in- blank paper on which the sentence was to be
carnate " (ib. 828). Eutyches declared that written (ib. vi. 601 seq. 625, 637, 988). They
the acts of the Constantinopolitan synod had afterwards protested that they had signed
been tampered with. " It is false," said under compulsion. Basil of Seleucia declared
Flavian. " If Flavian," said Dioscorus, that he had given way because he was " given
" knows anything which supports his opinion, over to the judgment of 120 or 130 bishops
;

let him put it in writing No one hinders had he been dealing with magistrates, he would
. . .

you, and the council knows it." Flavian then have suffered martyrdom." " The Egyp-
said that the acts had been scrutinized, and tians," says Tillemont, "who signed willingly
no falsification had been found in them that, enough, did so after the others had been made
;

for himself, he had always glorified God by to sign " (xv. 571 cf. Mansi, vi. 601). ;

holding what he then held. Dioscorus called Flavian's own fate was the special tragedy
on the bishops to give their verdict as to the of the Latrocinium. He had lodged in the
theological statements of Eutyches. Thev hands of the Roman delegates a formal appeal
acquitted him of all unsoundness, as faithful to the pope and the Western bishops (not to
to Nicene and Ephesian teaching. Domnus the pope alone see Leo, Ep. 43, Tillemont, ;

expressed regret for having mistakenly con- XV. 374). It was nearly his last act. He was
demned him (ib. 836). Basil of Seleucia spoke brutally treated, kicked, and beaten by the
like the rest. Flavian, of course, was silent. agents of Dioscorus, and even, we are told, by
Dioscorus spoke last, affirming the judgments Dioscorus himself (see Evagr. i. i Niceph. ;

of the council, and " adding his own opinion." xiv. 47U He was then imprisoned, and soon
Eutyches was " restored " to his presbyterial exiled, but died in the hands of his guards,
rank and his abbatial dignitv (ib. 861). His from the effect of his injuries, three days after
monks were then released from the excom- his deposition (Liberatus, Brev. 19), Aug. 11,
"

268 DIOSCORUS DIOSCORUS


449. He was regarded as a martyr for the heresy —having
also gained power by bribes,
doctrine of " the two natures in the one and assembled a disorderly multitude did all —
person " of Christ. Anatolius, who had been he could to ruin the Catholic faith, and to
the agent [apocrtsiarius) of Dioscorus at Con- establish the heresy of Eutyches, and con-
stantinople, was appointed his successor. demned us I desire, therefore, that he be

:

Dioscorus and his council as we may well called to account, and that the records of his
call it— proceeded to depose Theodoret and
several other bishops " many," says Leo,
;
proceedings against us be examined." Dios-
corus, preserving his self-possession, answered,
" were expelled from their sees, and banished, " The synod was held by the emperor's order ;

because they would not accept heresy " (Ep. I too desire that acts against Flavian may
its
93). Theodoret was put under a special ban. be read " added, " I beg that the
; but
" They ordered me," he writes (Ep. 140), " to doctrinal question be first considered."
be excluded from shelter, from water, from " No," said the magistrates, " the charge
everything." against you must first be met wait until the ;

Confusion now pervaded the Eastern acts have been read, as you yourself desired."
churches. It was impossible to acquiesce in The letter of Theodosius, convoking the late
the proceedings of the " Latrocinium." Leo council, was read. The magistrates then or-
bestirred himself to get a new oecumenical dered that Theodoret should be brought in,
council held in Italy : the imperial family in because Leo had " restored to him his epis-
the West supported this, but Theodosius II. copate," and the emperor had ordered him to
persisted in upholding the late council. In attend the council. He entered accordingly.
the spring of 450 Dioscorus took a new and The Egyptians and some other bishops shout-
"''
exceptionally audacious step. At Nicaea, on ed, " Turn out the teacher of Nestorius !

his way to the court, he caused ten bishops Others rejoined, " We signed a blank paper ;

whom he had brought from Egypt to sign a we were beaten, and so made to sign. Turn
document excommunicating pope Leo (Mansi, out the enemies of Flavian and of the faith " !

vi. 1009, 1148 ; vii. 104), doubtless on the " Why," asked Dioscorus, " should Cyril be
ground that Leo was endeavouring to quash ejected ? " (i.e. virtually, by the admission of
the canonical decisions of a legitimate council. Theodoret). His adversaries turned fiercely
His cause, however, was ruined when the upon him :
" Turn out Dioscorus the homi-
orthodox Pulcheria succeeded to the empire, cide " ! Ultimately the magistrates ruled
and gave her hand to Marcian, this event that Theodoret should sit down, but in the
leading to a new council at Chalcedon on middle of the assembly, and that his admission
Oct. 8, 451, which Dioscorus attended. The should not prejudice any charge against him
deputies of Leo come first, then Anatolius, (ih. 592). The reading went on at the letter ;

Dioscorus, Maximus, Juvenal. At first Dios- giving Dioscorus the presidency, he remarked
corus sat among those bishops who were on that Juvenal, and Thalassius of Caesarea, were
the right of the chancel (ib. vi. 580). The associated with him, that the synod had gone
Roman deputies on the opposite side desired, with him, and that Theodosius had confirmed
in the name of Leo, that Dioscorus should its decrees. Forthwith, a cry arose from the
not sit in the council. The magistrates, who bishops whom he had intimidated at Ephesus.
acted as imperial commissioners (and were " Not one of us signed voluntarily. We were
the effective presidents), asked what was overawed by soldiers." Dioscorus coolly said
charged against him ? Paschasinus, the chief that if the bishops had not understood the
Roman delegate, answered, " When he comes merits of the case, they ought not to have
in " (i.e. after having first gone out) " it will signed. The reading was resumed. Flavian
be necessary to state objections against him." being named, his friends asked why he had
The magistrates desired again to hear the been degraded to the fifth place ? The next
charge. Lucentius, another delegate, said, interruption was in reference
the sup- to
" He has presumed to hold a synod without pression, at the Latrocinium, of Leo's letter.
leave of the apostolic see, which has never Aetius, archdeacon of Constantinople, said it
been done." (Rome did not recognize the had not even been " received." " But," said
"second general council" of 381 which, in
; Dioscorus, " the acts shew that I proposed
fact, was not then owned as general.) " We that it should be read. Let others say why it
cannot," said Paschasinus, " transgress the was not read." " What others ? " " Juvenal
apostolic pope's orders." " We cannot," and Thalassius." Juvenal, on being ques-
added Lucentius, " allow such a wrong as that tioned, said, " The chief notary told us that
this man should sit in the council, who is come he had an imperial letter I answered that it
;

to be judged." " If you claim to judge," ought to come first no one afterwards said
;

replied the magistrates sharply, " do not be that he had in his hands a letter from Leo."
accuser too." They bade Dioscorus sit in the Thalassius (evidently a weak man, though
middle by himself, and the Roman deputies holding the great see of St. Basil) said that he
sat down and said no more. Eusebius of had not power, of himself, to order the reading
Dorylaeum asked to be heard against Dios- of the letter (ib. 617). At another point the
corus. " I have been injured by him the ;
" Orientals," the opponents of Dioscorus, ob-
faith has been injured Flavian was killed,
; jected that the acts of Ephesus misrepresented
after he and I had been unjustly deposed by their words. Dioscorus replied, " Each bishop
Dioscorus. Command my petition to the had his own secretaries taking down the
. . .

emperors to be read." It was read by Bero- speeches." Stephen of Ephesiis then narrated
nicianus, the secretary of the imperial con- the violence done to his secretaries Acacias :

sistory, and stated that " at the recent council of Arianathia described the coercion scene.
at Ephesus. this good (xp-n<^T6s) Dioscorus, dis- When the reader came to Dioscorus's words,
regarding justice, and supporting Eutyches in " I ej^amine the decrees of the Fathers
DIOSCORUS DIOSCORUS 269
(councils), Eusebius said, " See, he said, I '
as did Cyril ; we did so believe, and we do.
examine '
and / do the same." Dioscorus
; Anathema to whoever does not so believe."
caught him up "I said examine,' not in-
:
' '
The opponents of Dioscorus then claimed
novate.' Our Saviour bade us examine the Flavian as in fact of one mind with Cyril,
Scriptures that is not innovating."
;
" He as clear of Nestorianism. The " Easterns "
said, Seelv, and ye shall find," retorted Euse- added, " Leo believes so, Anatolius believes
bius {ib. 629). One bishop objected to the so." There was universal protestation of
record of " Guardian of the faith " as an agreement with Cyril, including even the
acclamation in honour of Dioscorus, " No one magistrates, who answered, as it were, for
said that." " They want to deny all that is Marcian and Pulcheria. Then came a fierce
confessed to be the fact," said Dioscorus outcry against Dioscorus. " Out with the
" let them next say they were not there." At
;

murderer of Flavian the parricide " The— !

the words of Eutyches, " I have observed the magistrates asked, " Why did you receive to
definitions of the council," i.e. the Ephesian communion Eutyches, who holds the opposite
decree against adding to the Nicene faith, to this belief ? Why condemn Flavian and
Eusebius broke in, " He lied There is no! Eusebius who agree with it ? " " The re-
such definition, no canon prescribing this." cords," answered Dioscorus, " will shew the
" There are four copies," said Dioscorus calm- truth." Presently, in regard to some words
ly, " which contain it. What bishops have of Eustathius of Berytus, adopting Cyril's
defined, is it not a definition ? It is not a phrase, " one incarnate nature," as Atha-
canon : a canon is a different thing." The nasian, the Easterns cried, " Eutyches thinks
bp. of Cyzicus referred to the additions made thus, so does Dioscorus." Dioscorus shewed
in the council of 381 to the original Nicene that he was careful to disclaim, even with
creed (e.g. " of the Holy Spirit and the Virgin anathema, all notions of a " confusion, or
Mary "). The Egyptians disclaimed all such commixture," of Godhead and manhood in
additions. (Cyril, in fact, had never acknow- Christ. The magistrates asked whether the
ledged that revised version of the Nicene canonical letters of Cyril, recently read (i.e.
formulary.) There was some further criticism his second letter to Nestorius, Mansi, vi. 660,
of the profession of faith made by Eutyches ;
and his letter to John, ib. 665, not including
whereupon Dioscorus said, " If Eutyches has the third letter to Nestorius, to which the 12
any heterodox opinion, he deserves not only anathemas were annexed) bore out the lan-
to be punished, but to be burnt My only ! guage as cited from Eustathius. Eustathius
object is to preserve the Catholic faith, not held up the book from which he had taken
that of any man. I look to God, and not to Cyril's language. " If I spoke amiss, here is
any individual I care for nothing but my
; the manuscript let it be anathematized with
:

own soul and the right faith " {ib. 633). Basil me " He repeated Cyril's letter to Acacius
!

of Seleucia described what had taken place as by heart, and then explained " One nature " :

regarded his own statements. " If you taught did not exclude the flesh of Christ, which was
in such a Catholic tone," said the magistrates, co-essential with us and " two natures "
;

" why did you sign the deposition of Flavian?" was a heterodox phrase if {i.e. only if) it was
Basil pleaded the compulsory authority of a used for a " division " of His person. " Why
council of bishops. " On your own shewing," then did you depose Flavian ? " "I erred "
said Dioscorus, " you betrayed the faith for {ib. v. 677). Flavian's own statement, that
fear of men." Others who had given way with Christ was of two natures after the incarna-
Basil cried, " We all sinned we all ask par-
; tion, in one hypostasis and one person, etc.,
don." " But," said the magistrates, " you was then considered several bishops, in turn,
;

said at first that you had been forced to sign approved of it, including Paschasinus, Ana-
a blank paper." The " peccavimus " was tolius, Maximus, Thalassius, Eustathius. The
reiterated {ib. 639). When the reader came Easterns called " archbp. Flavian " a martyr.
to the failure of Flavian's attempt to get " Let his next words be read," said Dioscorus
;

Eusebius a hearing, Dioscorus threw the " you will find that he is inconsistent with
responsibility on Elpidius so did Juvenal.
; himself." Juvenal, who had been sitting on
Thalassius only said, " It was not my doing." the right, now went over to the left, and the
" Such a defence," said the magistrates, "is Easterns welcomed him. Peter of Corinth,
no defence when the faith is concerned." a young bishop, did the same, owning that
" If," said Dioscorus, " you blame me for Flavian held with Cyril the Easterns ex- ;

obeying Elpidius, were no rules broken when claimed, " Peter thinks as does" (St.) "Peter."
Theodoret was brought in ? " " He came in Other bishops spoke similarly. Dioscorus,
as accuser." " Why then does he now sit in still undaunted, said, " The reason why
the rank of a bishop ? " " He and Eusebius Flavian was condemned was plainly this, that
sit as accusers," was the answer " and you; he asserted two natures after the incarnation.
sit as accused" {ib. 649). Afterwards the I have passages from the Fathers, Athanasius,
magistrates recurred to this topic " Euse- : Gregory, Cyril, to the effect that after the
bius, at Constantinople, when accusing Euty- incarnation there were not two natures, but
ches, himself asked that Eutyches should be one incarnate nature of the Word. If I am to
present. Why was not a like course taken at be expelled, the Fathers will be expelled with
Ephesus ? " No one answered (ib. 656). me. I am defending their doctrine I do not ;

Cyril's letter to John of Antioch, " Lae- deviate from them at all I have not got these
;

tentur coeli," was read as part of the acts of extracts carelessly, I have verified them " {ib.
Ephesus. Theodoret, by way of clearing vi. 684 ; see note in Oxf. ed. of Fleury, vol.
himself, anathematized the assertion of " two iii. p. 348). After more reading, he said, " I
Sons." All the bishops— so the acts of Chal- accept the phrase of two natures,' but I do
'


cedon say expressly cried out, " We believe not accept '
two " {i.e. he would not say,
'
;

270 DIOSCORUS DIOSCORUS


"Christ has now two natures"). "I am " I am hindered by the officers" {magistriani,
obliged to speak boldly {dvacax^'"'^^^'') ^ ^'^ '> the subordinates of the " master of the offices,"
speaking for my own soul." " Was Flavian," or " supreme magistrate of the palace," see
asked Paschasinus, " allowed such freedom of Gibbon, ii. 326) and, after two other sum-
;

speech as this man takes ? " " No," said the monses, positively and finally refused to come.
magistrates significantly " but then this ;
He had nothing more to say than he had said
council is being carried on with justice" {ib. to former envoys. They begged him to recon-
692). Some time later the Easterns denied sider it. " If your Holiness knows that you
that the whole council at Ephesus had assented are falsely accused, the council is not far off ;

to Eutyches's language it was the language


;
do take the trouble to come and refute the
of " that Pharaoh, Dioscorus the homicide." falsehood." " What I have said, I have said
;

Eustathius, wishing, he said, to promote a good it is enough." They desisted, and reported
understanding, asked whether " two natures " their failure. " Do you order that we proceed
meant " two divided natures." " No," said to ecclesiastical penalties against him ? "
Basil, " neither divided nor confused " {ib. asked Paschasinus, addressing the council.
744). Basil afterwards, with Onesiphorus, " Yes, we agree." One bishop said bittterly,
described the coercion used as to the signa- " When he murdered holy Flavian, he did not
tures (ib. 827). The reading went on until it adduce canons, nor proceed by church forms."
was necessary to light the candles {ib. 901). At The Roman delegates proposed a sentence, to
last they came to the signatures then the ;
this effect :
" Dioscorus has received Euty-
magistrates proposed that as the deposition ches, though duly condemned by Flavian,
had been proved unjust, Dioscorus, Juvenal, into communion. The apostolic see excuses
Thalassius, Eusebius of Ancyra, Eustathius, those who were coerced by Dioscorus at-
and Basil, as leaders in the late synod, should Ephesus, but who are obedient to archbp.
be deposed but this, it appears {ib. 976,
; Leo " (as president) " and the council ; but
1041), was a provisional sentence, to be this man glories in his crime. He prevented
further considered by the council. It was Leo's letter to Flavian " (the acts of Ephesus
received with applause, " A just sentence ! say the letter to the council, v. supra) "from
Christ has deposed Dioscorus God has ! being read. He has presumed to excom-
vindicated the martyrs " The magistrates ! municate Leo. He has thrice refused to come
desired that each bishop should give in a and answer to charges. Therefore Leo, by us
carefully framed statement of belief con- and the council, together with St. Peter, the
formable to the Nicene " exposition," to that rock of the church, deprives him of episcopal
of the 150 Fathers (of Constantinople, in 381), and sacerdotal dignity" {ib. 1045). A letter
to the canonical epistles and expositions of the was written to Dioscorus, announcing that he
Fathers, Gregory, Basil, Athanasius, Hilary, was deposed for disregarding the canons and
Ambrose, and Cyril's two canonical epistles disobeying the council. Dioscorus at first
published and confirmed in the first Ephesian made light of the sentence, and said that he
council, adding that Leo had written a letter should soon be restored the council wrote to
;

to Flavian against Eutyches. So ended the the two emperors, reciting his misdeeds, as
first session 935).{ib. before, and adding that he had restored the
The was held Oct. 10 {ib.
second session heterodox and justly-deposed Eutyches to his
937) Dioscorus was absent. After some dis-
; office, in contempt of Leo's letter, had done
cussion as to making an exposition of faith, injury to Eusebius, and had received to com-
which led to the reading of the creed in its two munion persons lawfully condemned {ib. 1097).

forms both of which were accepted and of — The deposition of Dioscorus was confirmed by
Cyril's " two canonical epistles," and of Leo's the emperor he was banished to Gangra in
;

letter to Flavian (the Tome), which was Paphlagonia, and died there in 454. Pro-
greeted with " Peter has spoken by Leo ;
terius, archpriest of Alexandria, who adhered
Cyril taught thus Leo and Cyril have taught
; to the council of Chalcedon, was placed in the
alike," but to parts of which some objection see of St. Mark, but never gained the goodwill
was taken by one bishop, and time given for of his people as a body they regarded Dios-
;

consideration, the usual exclamations were corus, though de facto deposed, as their legiti-
made, among which we find that of the mate patriarch and his deposition inaugur-
;

Illyrians, " Restore Dioscorus to the synod, to ated the schism which to this day has divided
the churches We have all offended, let all
! the Christians of Egypt, the majority of whom,
be forgiven " while the enemies of Dioscorus
! bearing the name of Jacobites, have always
called for his banishment, and the clerics of disowned the council of Chalcedon, and ven-
Constantinople said that he who communicat- erated Dioscorus as "their teacher" (Lit.
ed with him was a Jew {ib. 976). In the third Copt. St. Basil), and as a persecuted saint (see
session, Sat. Oct. 13, the magistrates not being Neale, Hist. Alex. ii. 6). As to his theological
present, a memorial to the council from Euse- position, there is, perhaps, little or nothing in
bius of Dorylaeum, setting forth charges his own words which might not be interpreted
against Dioscorus, was read {ib. 985). It then consistently with orthodoxy. Even as to his
appeared that Dioscorus had been summoned, conduct, the charges brought by the Alex-
like other bishops, to the session, and in- andrian petitioners at Chalcedon are too deep-
timated his willingness to come but his ; ly coloured by passion to command our full
guards prevented him. Two priests, sent to belief; and a mere profligate oppressor would
search for him, could not find him in the pre- not have secured so largely the loyalty of
cincts of the church. Three bishops, sent with Alexandrian churchmen. But his public acts
a notary, found him, and said, " The holy in 449 exhibit the perversion of considerable
council begs your Holiness to attend its abilities — of courage, resolution, clear-headed-
meeting." " I am under guard," said he ness— under the temptations of excessive
DIOSCORUS DOCETISM 271
power and the promptings of a tyrannous Docetism, the very early heresy that our
self-will. The brutal treatment of Flavian, blessed Lord had a body like ours, only in
which he practically sanctioned, in which appearance, not in reality. St. Jerome scarce-
perhaps he personally took part, has made ly exaggerates when he says {adv. Lucif. 23) :

his memory specially odious and his name


;
" While the apostles were still surviving, while
is conspicuous among the " violent men " of Christ's blood was still fresh in Judea, the
church history. [Monophysitism.] [w.b.] Lord's body was asserted to be but a phan-
Dioscorus (4), the eldest of four Nitrian tasm." Apart from N.T. passages, e.g. Eph.
monks, Dioscorus, Ammonius, Eusebius, and ii. 9, Heb. ii. 14, which confute this assertion,
Euthymius, known from their stature as the but do not bear clear marks of having been
" Tall Brethren," who became conspicuous in written with a controversial purpose, it ap-
Chrysostom's early troubles. They were re- pears from I. John iv. 2, IL John 7. that when
luctantly induced by Theophilus, patriarch of these epistles were written there were teachers,
Alexandria, to leave the desert and to submit stigmatised by the writer as prompted by the
to ordination. Eusebius and Euthymius be- spirit of Antichrist, who denied that Jesus
came presbyters, and Dioscorus was consecrat- Christ had come in the flesh, a form of expres-
ed bp. of Hermopolis. Weary of city life and sion implying a Docetic theory. Those who
uncongenial duties, and shocked by the avarice held that evil resulted from the inherent fault
and other vices of Theophilus, Dioscorus and of matter found it impossible to believe that
his brethren returned to their solitudes, though the Saviour could be Himself under the do-
the indignant patriarch tried to deter them by minion of that evil from which He came to
violent menaces (Socr. H. E. viii. 12). As de- deliver men, and they therefore rejected the
positaries of dangerous secrets, they had be- Church's doctrine of a real union of the divine
come formidable to Theophilus, who resolved and human natures in the person of our Lord,
to wreak vengeance upon them. On the pre- but our Lcrd's pre-existence and superhuman
text of their adherence to the mystic views of nature was regarded as so essential a part of
Origen on the Person of the Deity, and their Christianity that with two exceptions, or per-
decided opposition to Anthropomorphism, haps even only one (i.e. Justinus and perhaps
which Theophilus had originally shared with Carpocrates), all the sects known as Gnostic
them, Theophilus had them ejected from their ascribed to the Saviour a superhuman nature,
monasteries and treated them with the utmost some however separating the personality of
contumely and violence when they went to that nature from His human personality, others
Alexandria to appeal (Pallad. p. 54). Having reducing our Lcrd's earthly part to mere
procured their condemnation at a packed appearance. It is even doubtful whether we
synod at Alexandria, a.d. 401, Theophilus are not to understand in a technical sense the
personally headed a night attack on their statement that he taught that " power " from
monastery, which was burnt and pillaged, and the Father had descended on our Lord that ;

Dioscorus himself treated with violence and is to say, whether it was not his doctrine that
indignity (ib. p. 57). Driven from Egypt, one of the heavenly powers had united itself
the " Tall Brethren " took refuge in Palestine, to the man Jesus. Teaching of this kind is
but later resolved to appeal for protection to unequivocally attributed to Cerinthus, whose
the emperor and to Chrysostom in person. other doctrines, as reported by Irenaeus, have
Chrysostom manifested much sympathy, but great resemblance to those of Carpocrates. It
contented himself with writing to Theophilus, is in opposition to the theory which makes our
urging his reconciliation with them. Theo- Lord's claim to be Christ date, not from his
philus's only reply was an angry remonstrance birth, but from some later period, that Iren-
against his harbouring heretics and interfering aeus (iii. 16) uses the argument, shewing his
with another see. He sent emissaries to belief in the inspiration of the gospels, that
Constantinople to denounce the brethren as Matthew might have said, " the birth of Jesus
magicians, heretics, and rebels. The monks was in this wise," but that the Holy Spirit,
then announced their intention of appealing foreseeing and guarding against the deprava-
to the secular power for a judicial investiga- tion of the truth, said by Matthew " the birth
tion of the charges against them, and demand- of Christ was on this wise." Baur (Chrisiliche
ed that Theophilus should be summoned to Gnosis, p. 258) makes Docetism common to all
answer for his conduct before a council. The the Gnostics, holding that the theory which
superstitious reverence of the empress Eudoxia, has just been described is in a certain sense
all-powerful with the feeble Arcadius, secured Docetic ; inasmuch as while holding Jesus to
them their desire, and Theophilus was ordered be a real man, visibly active in the work of
to appear at Constantinople. This appeal to redemption, it teaches that this is but decep-
the civil authority displeased Chrysostom, tive appearance, the work being actually per-
who dechned to interfere further in the con- formed by a distinct personality, Christ. But
troversy. For the manner in which Theophilus it is more usual and more natural to use the
turned the tables on Chrysostom, becoming word Docetism only with reference to those
the accuser instead of the accused, and secur- other theories which refuse to acknowledge
ing his deposition, see Chrysostom
; Theo- the true manhood of the Redeemer. For ex-
philus (8). His main object having been ample, we are told (Iren. i. 23) that, according
accomphshed in the overthrow of his great to the system of Simon, the Redeemer (who,
rival, Theophilus now made no difficulty
about however, is not Jesus,* but Simon himself)
reconciliation with the Nitrian monks, whom
he publicly restored to communion on their * Perhaps it is not correct to say " not Jesus," for
simple petition. Dioscorus and Ammonius had, Simon held a theory of the transmigration of souls,
however, died not long before. Socr. H. E. vi. and may have claimed to be identical with Jesus. If
this were so, however, he must have been later than
16 Soz. H. E. viii. 17; Pallad. p. 157.
;
[e.v.] the Simon of the Acts,
272 DOCETISM DOCETISM
" had appeared among men as man, though Christ's passion and death that their antagon-
he was not a man, and was thought to have ists sought to establish. Marcion, on the
suffered in Judea, though he did not suffer." contrary, was quite willing to acknowledge
According to the system of Saturninus (Iren. the proof of our Lord's love exhibited in His
i. 24), the Saviour was without birth, without sufferings and death, but it was repulsive to
body, and without figure, and appeared a man him to own His human birth, which according
in phantasm, not in truth. According to to his view would have made our Lord the
Basilides, as reported by Irenaeus (i. 24), debtor and the subject of the Creator of the
Christ or Nous is not distinguished from Jesus, world. Accordingly, while Basilides had ad-
but is said to be an incorporeal power, who mitted a real birth of the man Jesus, Valen-
transfigured Himself as He willed ; that He tinus at least a seeming birth in which the
appeared on earth as man and worked mir- body elsewhere prepared was ushered into the
acles, but that He did not suffer ; that it was world, Marcion would own no birth at all, and
Simon of Cyrene, who, being transfigured into began his gospel with the sudden announce-
the form of Jesus, was crucified, while Jesus ment that in the 13th year of Tiberius Christ *
Himself, in the form of Simon standing by, came down (by which we are to understand
laughed at His persecutors, and then, incapable came down from heaven) to Capernaum, a city
of being held by them, ascended up to Him of Galilee (Tert. adv. Marc. iv. 7). Marcion's
Who had sent Him, invisible to them all. The disciple Apelles so far modified his master's
Docetism here described is strenuously com- doctrine that he was willing to own that Jesus
bated in the Ignatian Epistles in their Greek had a solid body, but denied that there had
form, esp. in ad Trail. 9, 10, and ad Smyrn. 2. been a birth in which He had assumed it (Tert.
In these the writer emphasises the statements de C. C. 61 ; and he held that of this body oOii.
that our Lord was truly born, did eat and Lord made only a temporary use, and that
drink, was truly persecuted under Pontius when He had shewn it to His disciples after His
Pilate, was truly crucified, and truly rose from resurrection He gave it back to the elements
the dead ; and he expressly declares that these from which He had received it (Hipp. Ref. vii.
statements were made in contradiction of the 38, 260). Something of this kind seems to
doctrine of certain unbelievers, or rather have been also the view of the sect known as
atheists, who asserted His sufferings to be but Docetae.
seeming. This polemic is absent from the The fourth book of the dialogue against the
Syriac Ignatius, and an argument has hence Marciunites (Origen, i. 853) contains a polemic
been derived against the genuineness of the against Docetism which is represented as de-
Greek form. But in order to make the argu- fended by Marinus the disciple of Bardesanes,
ment valid, there ought to be proof that the who adopts the Valentinian notion that our
rise of Docetism was probably later than the Lord had come dia Mapias, not €k Mapias,
age of Ignatius, whereas the probability seems and who maintains that His earthly body was
to be quite the other way. Saturninus holds only such as the angels had temporarily as-
such a place in all heretical lists, that he must sumed who ate and drank with Abraham.
be referred to the very beginning of the 2nd One argument on the orthodox side is used by
cent., and, as he taught in Antioch, may very several Fathers, and the form of words in
possibly have been encountered by Ignatius. which each has expressed himself has been
Polycarp also [Ep. 7) uses the words of I. John much discussed in modern controversy. It
iv. 3 in such a way as to shew that Docetism occurs here in the form " If Christ were with-
was in his time troublesome. out flesh and blood, of what sort of flesh and
In the forms of Docetism thus far described blood are the bread and wine, the images
there is no evidence that there was involved (elKovai) with which He commanded that the
any more subtle theory than that the senses memorial of Him should be made " (cf. Ign..'

of the spectators of our Lord's earthly life ad. Smyrn. 7 Iren. iv. 18, v. 2 Tert. adv. Mar-
; ;

were deceived. The Docetism of Valentinus cion. iv. 40). Of later heretics, the most con-
was exhibited in a more artificial theory, which siderable who maintained a Docetic theory
is fully set forth in our art. s.v. It appears are the Manicheans. In the controversy with
that Valentinus was only partly docetic. He them the orthodox had exactly the same points
conceded to Jesus the possession of a real body to establish as in the controversy with Mar-
capable of really affecting the senses, but held cion, viz. that Christ had come into the world,
that that body was made of a different sub- not merely as sent by the Father, but as really
stance from ours and was peculiar as regards born of the Virgin that He was truly incar-
;

its sustenance by earthly nutriment (Letter to nate, and did not assume the form of a body
Agathopus, ap. Clem. Alex. Strom, iii. 7, 451). merely as did the angels whose appearances
Irenaeus, however (v. i, 2, and more fully iii. have been recc rded that He was circumcised,
;

22), insists that the Valentinian doctrine did baptized, tempted ;that His death was a real
not practically differ from pure Docetism for one, as was necessary in order that His resur-
;

that if our Lord had not taken substance of rection also should be real (see in particular
flesh in the womb of the Virgin He could not the disputation between Augustine and
have been the real man Who suffered hunger Faustus). With regard to the disputes in the
and thirst and weariness, Who wept at the 6th cent, concerning our Lord's body, see
grave of Lazarus, Who sweat drops of blood, JuLiANUS (47) of Halicarnassus, and D. C. B.
from Whose wounded side came forth blood (4-V0I. ed.) under Corrupticolae and Phan-
and water. TASiASTAE. It is Well kuowu that Mahommed
The Docetism of Marcion differed from that * There is a well-recommended various reading,
of preceding Gnostics. With them the great " Deum " instead of " eum " but Epiphanius(//aer.
;

stumbling-block had been the sufferings oj 42, p. 312) would scarcely have passed this over in
Christ, and accordingly it is the reality 01 silence had he found it in his Marcion.
DOMITIANUS DOMITIANUS 273
also adopted the Docetic account of our Lord's They acknowledged that they were of the
crucifixion. kingly line, but stated that the only kingdom
Besides formal heresies which have been they looked for was one spiritual and angelic,
tainted with Docetism, the same imputation to be manifested at the end of the world. The
has been cast on more than one of the Fathers. emperor, Hegesippus tells us, thought them
It is very strongly brought by Photius (Bibl. beneath his notice, released them, and allowed
109) against the hypotyposes of Clement of them to go back to Judea, and put a stop to
Alexandria. This book has not survived, the persecution against the church which he had
but there is no doubt from his extant writings begun. This persecution was probably the in-
that Clement ascribed to our Lord a real body. quiry itself. The J udean followers of the Christ,
In a fragment probably from the lost Hypo- whom they habitually spoke of as the seed of
typoses preserved in a Latin trans, (p. 1009), David, would inevitably be suspected of being
he quotes from " the traditions " that when likely to appeal to the hopes of the conquered
St. John handled the body of our Lord the population.
flesh offered no resistance, but yielded place (2) Towards the close of Domitian's reign a
to the disciple's hand. Redepenning's con- domestic tragedy occurred which there is good
clusion {Origenes, ii. 391) is that Clement's reason for connecting with the progress of
doctrine deviated from that subsequently Christianity. The emperor had a cousin
recognised as orthodox, not in respect of our named Flavius Clemens, whom at one time he
Lord's body, the reality of which he acknow- held in high favour. He gave him his niece
ledged, but in holding that His body was Flavia Domitilla in marriage, changed the
directly united to the Divine Logos without the names of his sons to Vespasian and Domitian
intervention of a human soul capable of feeling and designated them as heirs to the empire,
pain or suffering. Kedepenning (I.e.) also and nominated Clemens as his colleague in the
discusses how far Origen is chargeable with consulship. Suddenly, almost within the year
Docetism, on which also consult Huet's of his consulship, he put Clemens to death,
Origeniana, ii. Qu. iii. 10, 11. banished his wife to Pandataria, and his
The traditions referred to by Clement have daughter (or niece), who was also called Domi-
been identified with the contents of a work of tilla, to Pontia. Revenge for these acts had
Leucius Charinus, purporting to relate travels apparently no small share in the emperor's
of the apostles, of which an account is given assassination. One of the most prominent
by Photius [Bibl. 114), and from which ex- conspirators concerned was Stephanus, an
tracts are also quoted in the Acts of the second agent and freedman of the banished widow of
council of Nicaea [Actio v.). In this work, Clemens. Thus the story is told by Suetonius
which Grabe seems to have correctly regarded (Domit. cc. 15, 17). It remains to see on
as Marcionite, it was taught that the Son was what grounds church writers like Eusebius
not man, but only seemed to be so that He ; (H. E. iii. 18) claim the three members of the
shewed Himself to His disciples sometimes Flavian house as among the first illustrious
young, sometimes old sometimes a child,
; martyrs of royal rank, (i) Flavius Clemens
sometimes an old man sometimes great,
; is described by Suetonius [I.e.) as " contemp-
sometimes small ; sometimes so great as to tissimae inertiae." A Christian would natur-
touch the heavens with His head that His
; ally be so described by men of his own rank
footsteps left no trace and that He was not
; and by the outer world, just as Tertullian
really crucified, but, according to Photius, complains that the Christians of his time were
another person in His place. The account stigmatized, when other charges failed, as
given in the Nicene extracts of a vision seen " infructuosi negotiis " [Apol. c. 42). (ii)
by St. John on the mount of Olives, at the The specific charge against Clemens and the
time of the crucifixion, teaches that the form two Domitillae is reported by Dio Cassius
crucified was not really our Lord, but does (Ixvii.
14) and Xiphilinus (p. 766) to have been
not suggest that it was anv other person, [g.s.] atheism. The same accusation, the latter
Domitianus (l), a.d. 81-96. This emperor, adds, was brought against many others who
though placed by Lactantius [de Mort. Perse- shewed a bias towards ewish customs. This
J
cut, c. 3) and others among the persecutors of again agrees with the general feeling of the
the church, can hardly be considered as having Roman world towards the Christians at a later
made any systematic effort to crush Christi- period, and may be regarded as the first in-
anity as such. Through the greater part of the stance of that feeling, (iii) Later tradition
empire the Christians seem to have been un- confirms these inferences. Jerome tells us
molested. The traces of persecution, such as [Ep.
27) how Paula visited Pontia on her way
they are, seem rather to belong to his general to Jerusalem, as already an object of rever-
policy of suspicion and cruelty. Indirectly ence, and saw the three cells in which Domi-
they are of interest in shewing how the new tilla and her two eunuchs Achilleus and Ne-
religionwas attracting notice and spreading. reus had lived during their exile. They were
(i) Vespasian, before his death,
had given said to have returned to Rome and suffered
orders (Bus. H. E. iii. 12) that inquiry should
martyrdom under Trajan. A church on the
be madefor all who claimed to be descendants Coelian Hill at Rome Clement,
dedicated to S.
of the house of David, seeking thus to cut off in which a tablet was discovered 1725 to the
in
allwho might incite the J ews to a fresh revolt. memory of Flavius Clemens, martyr, and de-
I he fears of Domitian led
him to continue the scribed by Cardinal Albiani [T. Flavti demen-
search, and Hegesippus (in Eus.
H. E. iii. 19, tis Viri Cofisulans et Martyris Tumulus lllus-
20) records one striking incident connected
with It. The grandchildren of
tratus,1727), seems therefore to have com-
Judas, the memorated the consul and not the writer of
of tbe Lord, were taken to Rome
} t^ that name. The name of Clement of Alex-
ana brought into the emperor's presence. may be re-
andria, Titus Flavius Clemens,
18
; .

274 DOMITILLA FLAVIA DONATUS and DONATISM


garded as an indication of the honour in which moned a synod of Syrian bishops which con-
the martyr's memory was held. On the whole, firmed the deposition of Athanasius of Perrha.
everything seems to indicate that the received In 447 he consecrated Irenaeus to the see of
tradition is true, and that the Christian church Tyre (Theod. Ep. no; Labbe, Concil. t. iii.
was almost on the point, even before the close col. 1275) ; but Theodosius II., having com-
of the ist cent., of furnishing a successor to manded that the appointment should be
the imperial throne. annulled, Irenaeus being both a digamus and
(3) With the reign of Domitian is also con- a favourer of the Nestorian heresy, Domnus,
nected the legend of St. John's presence at despite Theodoret's remonstrances, yielded to
Rome, and of his being thrown, before the the imperial will (Theod. u.s. Ep. 80). Ibas,
;

Porta Latina, at the command of the emperor, bp. of Edessa, being charged with promulgating
into a cauldron of boiling oil, and then ban- Nestorian doctrines (Labbe, ib. t. iv. col. 658),
ished to Patmos. TertuUian {de Praescript. Domnus summoned a council at Antioch (a.d.
0. 36) is the first writer who mentions it. The 448), which decided in favour of Ibas and
apostle, as the chosen friend of the Son of deposed his accusers {ib. 639 seq.). Domnus's
David, may have been pointed out by the sentence, though revoked by Flavian, bp.
delatores of Ephesus as the descendants of of Constantinople, was confirmed by three
Judas were in Judea. Tertullian, in speaking episcopal commissioners to whom he and
elsewhere [Apol. c. 5) of Domitian's conduct the emperor Theodosius had committed the
towards the church, describes him as only matter. Domnus was one of the earliest im-
attempting a persecution, and then, thinking peachers of the orthodoxy of Eutyches, in
better of it, recalling those whom he had a synodical letter to Theodosius, c. 447
condemned to exile. In other accounts (Eus. (Facundus, viii. 5 xii. 5). At the Latrocinium,--
;

H. E. iii. 20) the decree of recall was connected held at Ephesus, Aug. 8, 449, on this matter,
with the accession of Nerva. [e.h.p.] Domnus, in virtue of an imperial rescript, found
Domitilla Flavia. [Domitianus (i).] himself deprived of his presidential seat, which
Domnus I. (2), bp. of Antioch, appointed was occupied by Dioscorus, while precedence
A.D. 269 on the deposition of Paul of Samosata, over the patriarch of Antioch was given to
by the sole authority of the council, without Juvenal of Jerusalem (Labbe, ib. 115, p. 251).
any reference to the clergy and people, the Cowed by the dictatorial spirit of Dioscorus,
bishops evidently fearing they might re-elect and unnerved by the violence of Barsumas and
Paul (Eus. H. E. vii. 30). Paul, relying on his monks, Domnus revoked his former con-
the support of Zenobia, retained for two years demnation of Eutyches, and voted for his
the episcopal residence and its church. The restoration (ib. col. 258) and for the con-
orthodox section appealed to Aurelian after demnation of Flavian {ib. col. 306). Domnus
he had conquered Zenobia and taken Antioch, was, nevertheless, deposed and banished by
A.D. 272. The emperor decided that the right Dioscorus. The charges against him were,
of occupation should belong to the party in approval of a Nestorian sermon preached
communion with the bishops of Italy and the before him at Antioch by Theodoret on the
see of Rome. This decision was enforced by death of Cyril (Mercator, t. i. p. 276), and
the civil power, and Paul was compelled to some expressions in letters written by him to
leave the palace in disgrace (Eus. u.s.). Dioscorus condemning the perplexed and
Domnus died a.d. 274, and was succeeded by obscure character of Cyril's anathemas
Timaeus (Till. Mem. eccl. t. iv. p. 302 ;
(Liberatus, c. 11, p. 74). He was the only
Neander, Ch. Hist. vol. i. p. 193, Clark's trans. bishop then deposed and banished who was
Neale, Patr. of Antioch, pp. 52-57). [e.v.] not reinstated after the council of Chalcedon.
Domnus II. (4), bp. of Antioch, a friend of At that council Maximus, his successor in the
Theodoret. He was nephew of John, bp. of see of Antioch, obtained permission to assign
Antioch, brought up under Euthymius the Domnus a pension from the revenues of the
famous anchoret of Palestine. He was ordained church (Labbe, ib. co\. 681 append, col. 770).
;

deacon by Juvenal of Jerusalem on his visitFinally, on his recall from exile Domnus re-
to the Laura of Euthymus in a.d. 429. Two turned to the monastic home of his youth, and
years afterwards, learning that his uncle the ended his days in the Laura of St. Euthymius,
bp. of Antioch had become entangledNJri the where in 452, according to Theophanes, he
Nestorian heresy, he besought Euthyrnibs^to afforded a refuge to Juvenal of Jerusalem when
allow him to go and extricate him. Euth.jNjdriven from his see (Theojih. p. qa). [e.v.]
mius counselled him to remain where he was, is, P~"-DonatUS and Donatism. The Donatists
telling him that God could take care of his were the^-first Christians who separated from
uncle without him ; that solitude was safer the church on the ground of discipline, though
for him than the world ; that his design would the church had already been torn by heresies,
not turn out to his ultimate advantage ; that such as Gnosticism and Manicheism, which
he might not improbably succeed to his uncle's had affected doctrines. It is important to
dignity, but would become the victim of clever remember that Donatism was not heresy, as
and unprincipled men, who would avail them- the word is ordinarily understood. All here-
selves of his simplicity, and then accomplish tics are, in one sense, schismatics, but all
his ruin ; but the old man's counsels were schismatics are not heretics ; and the Dona-
thrown away. Domnus left the Laura with- tists themselves protested, with justice,
out even saying farewell to Euthymius {Vita against being considered heretics.
S. Euthymii, cc. 42, 56, 57). He obtained Mensurius was bp. of Carthage during and
such popularity at Antioch that on the death after Diocletian's persecution (a.d. 303).
of his uncle, a.d. 441, he was appointed his Having been required by consul Anulinus to
successor, and at once ranked as the chief give up any copies of Holy Scripture in his
bishop of the Eastern world. In 445 he sum- possession, he had hid them, and passed off
DONATUS and DONATISM DONATUS and DONATISM 275

heretical works in their stead. The


consul, a man
bold enough to denounce the imperial
learning the " pious fraud," declined to take power and to infuse vigour into their strife
further action. Mensurius felt it his duty to against the Caecilianists. He was neither
check the growing and inordinate reverence " the angel " his followers called him nor " the
for martyrdom. He saw that there were too fiend " his opponents described him. He was
many would-be martyrs whose character a man of unquestionable ability, eloquence,
would not bear close scrutiny', and, together and thoroughness —the Cyprian of his party,
with his archdeacon Caecilian, did his best to as St. Augustine called him ;but also hard
discountenance the reverence of good but and unloving to foe, proud and overbearing
mistaken Christians for these undeserving to friend. Optatus and .St. Augustine were
men. This naturally brought him into odium justified in comparing with the proud " prince
with those to whom martyrdom was the be- of Tyre " (Ezek. xxviii. 2) the man who in his
coming conclusion of the Christian life. lifetime permitted his followers to swear by
During his lifetime the storm was brewing, his name and by his grey hairs, and could ask
and it fairly broke out when Caecilian suc- of the menial bishops, " What do you say to
ceeded him (a.d. 311). That appointment my party ? " and who, after his death, was
was felt to be a blow to all who magnified described by Donatists at the conference of
martyrdom. His opponents rested their Carthage as the miracle-worker, " the pride
principal objection on the fact that he had of the church of Carthage, the man with the
been ordained by a traditor, Felix of Aptunga ;
reputation of a martyr."
and proceeded to elect Majorinus as successor When the soldiers of Ursacius appeared in
to Mensurius. The charge was a strange one N. Africa, Donatus was ready to resist them,
to be made by Caecilian's chief opponent, and his courage infected the timid people and
Secundus, bp. of Tigisis, for documents exist prelates. His name became the rallying-point
which prove Secundus himself a traditor, in for every man who had real or imaginary
spite of his boast to Mensurius. From that grievances against existing ecclesiastical, civil,
date Donatism, as it was afterwards called, and social powers, amongst others the Circum-
had a separate and schismatical existence. cellions. " They were a class of men," says
Both sides appealed to Constantine, and the St. Augustine, " who followed no kind of
emperor at once subjected the alleged traditor- useful occupation, held their own lives in
ship of Felix to a thorough examination by a fanatical contempt, and thought no death too
council at Rome (a.d. 313), which decided in cruel for those who differed from them they
;

favour of Felix, cleared his character, and wandered about from place to place, chiefly in
consequently declared the ordination of Cae- the country districts, and haunted the cells
cilian valid. The subject was again exhaus- of the peasants for the purpose of obtaining
tively discussed before the consul Aelianus, food. Hence they were called Circumcel- '

who, at the bidding of Constantine, gave the liones.' " The better class of Donatists
Donatists another opportunity (a.d. 314), at turned away in horror from fanatics who
Carthage, of proving their charge against imbrued their hands with the blood of the
Felix. The finding of the tribunal was un- innocent as well as of the guilty but the offer;

animous : "Nemo in euni (Felicem) aliquid of partisanship having been once accepted, it
probare potuerit quod religiosissimas scrip- was impossible to withdraw it altogether.
turas tradiderit vel exusserit." Donatus, Parmenian, Petilian, and Cresconius
Bp. Majorinus died a.d. 315, but had been in turn were forced to paUiate as much as they
a leader of little consequence. His followers could the actions of these allies, who preferred
had called themselves, for convenience' sake, to be called Agonistici, Champions of Christ,
the party of Majorinus but after his death, and who rushed into the battle with " Deo

;

if not before, they took the name Donatists laudes " as their war-cry, and with a weapon
— by which they are best known. There were dubbed " Israelite " as their war-club.
perhaps 2 bishops named Donatus (i) of
;
Constantine soon found that Donatism was
Casae Nigrae, who, before Caecilian's eleva- not to be put down by the sword. In a.p. 317
tion, had shewn his schismatical tendencies Ursacius was bidden hold his hand, and Cae-
;

(2) the successor of Majorinus and surnamed cilian was exhorted to treat his opponents
" the Great." But this distinction has lately kindly, and leave vengeance to God. The
been questioned see Sparrow Simpson, St. emperor's letter was a mixture of truth and
;

Aug. and Afr. Ch. Divisions (1910J, p. 31 sarcasm " All schisms," he wrote, " are from
;
:

Monceaux, Revue de VHist. de Religion (1009). the devil and these Separatists proceed from
;

In Donatus the Great personal hostility to him. What good can you expect from those
Mensurius and Caecilian, and irritation who are the adversaries of God and the enemies
against the decisions of Rome and Aries of the holy church ? Such men must split off
[Caecilian], of Aelianus and Constantine, led from the church, and attach themselves to the
to a defiant attitude against both Church and devil. Surely we act most wisely, if we leave
State. The dissentients to Caecihan had, to them what they have wrenched from us.
consistently enough, refused to his church the By patience and kindness we may hope to gain
title of the Church of God, and appropriated them. Let us leave vengeance to God. I re-
that distinction to themselves. The Caecil- joice to think that you meet their brutality
ianist clergy were condemned for their league with gentleness and good temper. As I under-
with a traditor and their acts repudiated as stand that these men have destroyed a church
invalid; hence those who followed Majorinus in Constantinople, I have ordered my
finance-
were rebaptized. But Constantine's edict minister to build you a new one. God grant
(a.d. 316) took away from them their churches, that these mistaken Separatists may at last
and the heavy hand of Ursacius deprived them see their error and turn to the one true God " !

of their lives. The sectarians found in Donatus It was not a letter calculated to soothe the
276 DONATUS and DONATISM DONATUS and DONATISM
Donatists. They presently replied to the arius did not discriminate between moderate
emperor that he must distinctly understand Donatist and extreme Circumcellionist. With
that they would have nothing to do with his an iron hand he crushed both. Donatus was
" fool of a bishop " (i.e. Caecilian), and that he banished, and died in exile. The church
might do his worst. With this mutual con- was triumphant. Optatus saluted Constans
tempt and recrimination matters ended for as the servant of God who had been privileged
the time. Constantine during the remainder to restore unity ; but many regretted that
of his life ignored the Donatists ; but they unity had been won at such a price. When
increased largely in numbers in their own Donatists afterwards called Christians " Mac-
districts —
in a.d. 330 they held a synod at- arians," in scornful allusion to the persecutor

tended by 270 bishops and established a few of their sect, St. Augustine replied :
" Yes,
insignificant stations elsewhere. we are Macarians, for that name means
Constans, son of Constantine, succeeded to '
blessed,' and who is more blessed than Christ
his father's N. African possessions ; and, at to Whom we belong ? " but it was natural to
first, endeavoured to conciliate the Donatists him and worthy of him to add, " Don't let us
by kindness. He published (a.d. 340) an call one another names. Don't cast at me
edict requiring the Donatists to return to the the times of Macarius, and I won't remind you
church, urging that " unity must now exist, of the madness of the Circumcellions. Let
because Christ was a lover of unity," and in- us, as far as possible, work together, because
structed his commissioners Ursacius (probably we are all orphans."
not the Ursacius already mentioned) and It was probably soon after the cessation of
Leontius to distribute money, as alms, in the persecution that Gratus, Caecilian's suo-.^
Donatist as well as in Catholic churches. The cessor, summoned a synod at Carthage, which
Donatists spurned it as gold offered by the established (i) the non-iteration of baptism,
devil to seduce men from their faith. The when duly administered in the name of the
sword of persecution was then unsheathed to Trinity ; (2) the necessary restrictions on
deprive the Donatists of their churches ; and reverence for martj'rs, and on the assignment
the survivors regarded the victims as martyrs of that title.
and their graves as platforms for preaching In A.D. 361 Julian became emperor. His
resistance. In a.d. 345 Gregorius travelled edict " recalled all the bishops and clergy
through the province, offeringnot onlyalmsbut banished in the reign of Constantius, and
valuable church plate to all who would accept granted equal freedom to all parties of the
the imperial invitation to submit. Donatus Christian church." The Donatists were not
sent circular letters through all the provinces, included in this. Two of their bishops,
forbidding the acceptance of any presents ;
Rogatian and Pontus, waited on the emperor ;

and wrote to Gregorius in a scurrilous style. and left with full permission to return to
In A.D. 347 a third commission, composed of their country. The return was marked by
Paul, Macarius, andTaurinus, came to Donatus violence and murder. The Donatists treated
himself, with gold in their hands. The bishop the churches as places which had been pro-
listened impatiently, and at length broke out, faned, washed the walls and altars, tore the
" What has the emperor to do with the vestments to pieces, threw the holy vessels
church ? " They were words which meant outside and the sacred elements to the dogs.
much at the time, but have meant more since. Then they reintroduced their rigorous dis-
The language of Donatus was repeated from cipline. Apostates were received only after
every Donatistic pulpit by preachers pro- most humiliating penance, laymen were re-
claiming the duty of separation from a church baptized, and clerics reordained. For two
" which committed fornication with the years Donatism was in the ascendant and
princes of this world," and whose prelates were basked in the imperial sunshine. But the
mere tools of an emperor. Such obloquy cry which went up from the dying Julian's
served to madden the fanatics, even though lips (a.d. 363), " Galilean, Thou hast con-
it brought upon them furious persecution. quered," was also the cry which told the
The Circumcellions rose, and frightful blood- Donatist that his day of triumph had ended.
shed followed. These " Christian champions " Donatus had been succeeded by Parmenian,
traversed the country, subverting everything. perhaps the ablest and least prejudiced of the
Slaves and debtors were deemed brothers ;
Donatist episcopacy. A foreigner by birth,
masters and creditors tyrants. The excesses and actually ignorant of many of the saddest
of the Circumcellions were so great that and cruellest episodes of Donatist history, he
Donatus and his brother-bishops were forced entered upon his duties at Carthage free from
to appeal to Taurinus to check them. The the passionate views which marked so many
Circumcellions kissed the hands which be- of his followers, and disposed to rate lightly
trayed them, and turned their fury upon much that to them was of great importance.
themselves. They longed for martyrdom. His literary merit was great and excited the
They invaded pagan temples that death might admiration of Optatus, bp. of Milevi, and of St.
be found from the sword of some infuriated Augustine, each of whom has left a statement
idolator they entered courts of justice and
; of the current Donatist opinions. The theo-
frightened judges ordered their instant exe- logical disputations between Optatus and
cution ; travellers were stopped and threat- Parmenian are preserved in the great work of
ened with instant death if they did not slay the former, and evidently Parmenian's opin-
the suppliants. Days, hours, and places were ions are honestly given. Optatus was a man
named that an admiring crowd might witness of unquestioned piety, dialectical skill, and
them cast themselves headlong from some rock orthodoxy ;
perfectly indifferent to Circum-
into the graves which their posterity would cellion threats, bribery, or corruption ;
earn-
reverence as those of the martyrs. Mac- estly desirous for unity, if it could be obtained
DONATUS and DONATISM DONATUS and DONATISM 277

without sacrifice of principle ; and he sought asked to assist in carrying out the judgment
as much common ground as possible, before of the council on the refractory. The Maxim-
stating unhesitatingly where he and his ianists were hunted from place to place, and
opponent must part. If the usual tone of the treatment of the aged and beloved bp. of
kindliness and courtesy is occasionally for- Membresa, Salvius, was scandalous and crue!
gotten, if the title " brother " given to Par- beyond measure. But few Maximianists,
menian is replaced by " Antichrist " when however, returned to the main body ; the
Donatus is mentioned, if cool, argumentative majority struggled on as martyrs, rebaptizing
reasoning is sometimes dropped for defiant and reordaining those who joined them.
passionate utterance, the difference is intel- Donatism had received a mortal wound.
ligible in a character so full of both charity The action of the Catholic church and the
and zeal that St. Augustine called him " a state during this period further helped to
second Ambrose of Milan." check the extension of Donatism. Many
There were two points about which, theor- Donatists, priests as well as laymen, disgusted
etically, both men were agreed (i) That there: with party squabbles and cruel excesses,
was only one church and {2) that in that
;
turned their eyes to the church. They were
one church there was only one baptism, and met with kindness. In a.d. 393 a council met
this not to be repeated. But disagreement at Hippo under the presidency of Aurelius,
soon began. " A church," said the Donatist. bp. of Carthage. The measures passed were
" in which traditors both existed and dis- liberal in spirit and intention. They allowed
pensed the sacraments was no church, and returning Donatist clergy to retain their
baptism administered by traditors was no clerical position and functions, if they had not
baptism." Where, then, was the pure church? rebaptized, and if they brought their congre-
with the Catholic or Donatist ? How far was gations with them and decided that children
;

the validity of the sacraments dependent upon of Donatists, even if they had received Donatist
the purity of the church and the personal char- baptism, should not be excluded from the
acter of those who dispensed them ? These service of the altar.
were old questions, but discussed between The action of the state had varied according
Optatus and Parmenian as they had never as political events had directed imperial atten-
been before. [Optatus (6) ; Parmenianus.] tion to Donatists or removed it from them.
The existence of Donatism was next threat- Valentinian's edict (a.d. 373) deposing any
ened by divisions within. " As Donatus," clerical person who rebaptized, and Gratian's
says St. Augustine, " sought to divide Christ, successive decrees — the first (a.d. 375) com-
so was Donatus divided by the divisions which manding the surrender of their churches the ;

arose daily amongst his own followers." Rog- second (a.d. 377) issued to the Donatist,
atists and Maximianists, or individuals like Flavian, the imperial representative in Africa,
Tichonius, arose to contest or moderate the enjoining further the confiscation of houses
views of the founders of the sect. [Tichonius.] used by them ; the third (a.d. 378) command-
The fiercest blow to Donatism was, however, ing the expulsion from Rome of one Claudian,
given by the Maximianist schism. [Maximi- who had gone there to propagate Donatist
ANUS (2).] Parmenian died a.d. 392, and was
succeeded by Primian. Primian imposed a

opinions produced a good deal of misery
but the political disquiet connected with the
;

penance on one of his deacons, Maximian the ;


murder of Gratian (a.d. 383), the wars between
deacon protested, was excommunicated, and Maximus and Theodosius, the deposition of
appealed to some neighbouring bishops, who Maximus and restoration of Valentinian (a.d.
took up his cause and respectfully solicited 388), made it impossible to enforce these or
Primian to give them a hearing or to meet similar injunctions, and for the time the
them. Primian declined. In a.d. 393 more Donatists enjoyed a comparative freedom from
than 100 malcontent bishops assembled in interference. In a.d. 392 Theodosius issued
synod at Cabarsussis, summoned Primian his laws against heretics generally, fining all
before them, and, on his again refusing to such who performed priestly functions. This
notice them, recited his misdeeds in an was not directed against the Donatists par-
elaborate document, excommunicated him, ticularly, and was probably not enforced
and elected Maximian, procuring his consecra- against them previous to the death of Theo-
tion at Carthage. The Donatists of Carthage, dosius (a.d. 395). That event was followed
now divided into Primianists and Maximian- by Gildo's usurpation of power in Africa, and
ists, had, in their turn, to experience the his alliance with one of the cruellest Donatist
misery of altar set up against altar. " God," bishops, Optatus of Thamugas. The ravages
says St. Augustine, " was repaying to themcommitted were only stayed by Honorius's
the measure they had paid to Caecilian." victory over Gildo (a.d. 398) and Theo- ;

Primian and his party were, however, much dosius's penalty was enforced by Seranus
the stronger. The bps. of Numidia and against Optatus and his followers. An edict
Mauritania to the number of 310 sided with of Honorius (a.d. 398) decreeing the punish-
him and at the council of Bagai (a.d. 394), ment of death to all who dared to violate
;

presided over by Primian himself, Maximian churches and maltreat the clergy was evident-
was excommunicated, and his ordainers and ly directed against the Circumcellions.
coadjutors commanded to repent and return Yet the position of the Donatist body was
to the Primianist party before a certain date. better than that of the Catholic church. The
The Maximianists shewed little disposition to greater part of Africa was Donatist, the
acquiesce in this decision, and persecution church lay crushed and oppressed. Towards
began. Maximian's church was levelled to the end of the 4th cent, it seemed almost as if
the ground and his house handed over to a the place of the ancient. Catholic, and Apos-
heathen priest. The proconsul Seranus was tolic church would be taken by the new usurp-
278 DONATUS and DONATISM DONATUS and DONATISM
ing sect. Then the good providence of God threatening the Donatist bishops and clergy
raisedupSt. Augustine, whosepietyandability with banishment. In the same year imperial
shielded then and since the true church of laws forbade rebaptism, condemned the Don-
Christ. In a.d. 391 he came to Hippo, and the atists as heretics, confiscated their meeting-
popular vote at once pointed him out as the houses and the goods of those who rebaptized,
future successor of the aged Valerius. In a.d. excluded them from testamentary inheritance,
395 he was consecrated coadjutor-bishop. and proclaimed to all " that the one and true
Hippo was a hot-bed of Donatism. In a letter Catholic faith of Almighty God was to be
{Ep. 33) to Proculeianus the Donatist bp. of received." These and similar imperial
Hippo, St. Augustine pathetically asks, "What edicts brought to the church many who had
has Christ done to us, that we rend His mem- been wavering. The Catholics received them
bers asunder ? Consider how sad a division with love and forgiveness ; and in some cities,
reigns in Christian households and families. as in Carthage, union between Catholics and

Husband and wife, who in their married life Donatists was openly asserted and celebrated.
— know no division, separate themselves at But these edicts exasperated still further the
the altar of Christ ! Children live with their more extreme Donatists. St. Augustine's own
parents in the same dwelling, but that dwelling city. Hippo, and its neighbourhood suffered
is not also God's dwelling." Full of zeal, St. fearfully from the Circumcellions. In a.d.
Augustine threw himself into the thick of the 409 St. Augustine complained bitterly {Ep.
fight. His sermons attracted Donatists as Tii) of their plundering and ravages, their
well as Catholics, and the sectarians threat- revengeful acts and cruelties to the Catholic
ened his life but his works had great effect.
; bishops and laity. Letters to Donatist
Men like Petilian were silenced priests, laj^-
;
bishops or to imperial commissioners were oi^
men, and even whole communities came back little use when the men to whom they referred
to the church. Twice in 401 a council met at would slay themselves if balked of their prey,
Carthage to deal with the supply of Catholic or cast themselves into the fires they them-
clergy ; Donatist enticement or persecution selves had kindled. They heard of Stilicho's
having so reduced their number that many death (a.d. 408). Rightly or wrongly they
churches had no deacons and therefore no had considered him the originator of the stern
future means for supplying the higher offices. decrees lately issued, and hailed the news by
The council at Hippo had imposed restrictions joining with heathen in slaying, ill-using, or
upon Donatist clergy, who returned to the putting to flight the hated Catholic bishops.
church, exercising their office. An appeal to Fresh deputations went to Rome St. Augus-
;

pope Anastasius to remove these restrictions tine wrote letters to the chief minister Olympius;
was allowed. St. Augustine set the example and fresh edicts, enforcing previous laws, fines,
of receiving Donatist-ordained deacons, though and punishments, were sent to Africa.
apparently he declined to receive again in — About this time St. Augustine issued other

an official capacity those who had previously works which throw much light on the Donatist
passed from the church to the sectarians. controversy : (a) On the One Baptism, written
These measures, though accompanied by between a.d. 406 and 411, an answer to a
loving words of greeting, roused the Donatists. tract of Petilian's bearing the same title.
They were still a majority, powerful and per- (b) Against Cresconius, written a.d. 409.
sistent. They called to their aid the brutal Cresconius objected to his party being called
fanaticism of the Circumcellions, especially Donatists: "Not Donatus, but Christ was
against apostate Donatists and the Catholic their founder. It was not heresy but schism
clergy. Once again fire and sword levelled which separated them and the Catholic
churches and destroyed altars. St. Augustine church " ; and Cresconius claimed that it was
was threatened, tracked, and surrounded ;
not they who were in schism, but the Catholics,
Catholic priests were stopped in the road, and who thereby had lost church and baptism.
the choice offered them :
" Promise to preach The invasion of Rome by Alaric king of the
no more, or prepare for ill-treatment." Moder- Goths took place a.d. 408, and it was rumoured
ate-minded men among the Donatists looked that the Donatists of Africa were ready to
on in horror, but were powerless to check the support the invader. The emperor Honorius
barbarities. The Catholics, before appealing rescinded his extreme decrees against heathen
to the state, desired (a.d. 403) a conference. and schismatic but in 410 a deputation of 4
;

The Donatist bishop, Primian, repelled their bishops from Carthage again brought com-
advances with insult, saying, "The sons of plaints against the Donatists to him. The
the martyrs and the brood of traditors can deputation was charged to petition for a con-
never meet." Equally unsuccessful were ference of Catholics and Donatists under im-
attempts of St. Augustine and Possidius to perial presidency. In Oct. 410 Honorius
confer with leading Donatist bishops. At last instructed the proconsul of Africa, MarccUinus,
a council at Carthage (a.d. 404) determined to to make all necessary preparations and act as
appeal to Honorius to enforce the laws of president at the debates. He issued an edict
Theodosius against the Donatists and restrict (Jan. 411) inviting Catholic and Donatist
the excesses of the Circmncellions. But before bishops to meet in June at Carthage and elect
the deputation reached the emperor, his anger representatives, promising safe-conduct and
was kindled by accounts from his own officers. suspending meanwhile all processes against
The cruelty of the Donatists to two Catholic Donatists. Both parties entered eagerly into
bishops, Servus and Maximinian of Bagai, the scheme : 286 Catholic and 279 Donatist
made him little disposed to accept the gentler bishops came to Carthage in May and, after
;

measures proposed by the covmcil of Carth- great difficulty in bringing the Donatists to
age ; and in 405 he issued an edict, fining the point, the president pronounced sentence.
those who had inflicted ill-usage, and The official Acts and the testimony of Holy
DONATUS and DONATISM DONATUS and DONATISM 279
Scripture were taken to have proved the un- prove more clearly to what a large extent this
soundness of the accusations against Caecilian, had taken place. The church was no longer
and of the view that one man, through the suppliant, but triumphant and the change
;

sinfulness of another, became therefore a par- is observable also in some letters and acts
taker in that other's guilt. " I therefore," of St. Augustine at this period, which may
said Marcellinus, " warn all men to hinder
. . . be said to be his last words on the great
the assembling of Donatists in towns and Donatist controversy. His work de Correc-
villages, and to restore the churches to the tione Donatistarum is addressed to a soldier,
Catholics. Every bishop of the community Bonifacius, and is written in a style and lan-
of Donatus must, on his return to his home, guage almost military in its stern enforcement
return to the one true church, or at least not of discipline. Bonifacius had asked the
impede the faithful execution of the law. If difference between the Arians and Donatists.
they have Circumcellions about them, and do St. Augustine, after answering the question,
not restrain and repress the excesses of these went on to speak of Donatists as " rebels
men, they shall be deprived of their places in against the unity of the church of Christ."
the state." The conference at Carthage and the emperor
The condemned Donatists, among whom had laid down laws which they disobeyed,
were the principal bishops, smarting at their and thus deserved punishment (Dan. iii. 29).
defeat, reviled Marcellinus and appealed to the The Lord had commanded His disciples to
emperor. The reply came (a.d. 4 12), terse and compel the resisting to come to the marriage-
stern, and classed them as heretics. It bade feast, and that marriage-feast was the unity
them return to the church, fined them accord- of the Body of Christ. The church was that
ing to their rank and station, and in the event Body so long as a man lived, God in His
;

of contumacy confiscated their houses and goodness would bring him to repentance, and
goods. Many Donatists obeyed the edict, lead him to that church, which was the temple
others scorned it. Whole communities, as at of the Holy Ghost ; but outside that Body, the
Cirta, bishops and laymen everywhere, re- Church, the Holy Ghost gave no man life.
turned to the church ;some from conviction, The same strong statement recurs in his
others for reasons of expediency and comfort. exhortation to Emeritus, the Donatist bp. of
The Circumcellions broke out afresh, fired Caesarea. The majority of Emeritus's con-
churches, destroyed houses, cast into the gregation had returned to the church. St.
flames those Scriptures which had been found Augustine pleaded with the bishop " Outside
:

to tell against them, and cruelly maltreated the church you may have everything except
and even murdered ecclesiastics who expound- salvation. You may have ofifices. Sacraments,
ed them. The less violent proclaimed with a Liturgy, Gospel, belief, and preaching, in the
sneer that the church chests and imperial name of the Trinity but you can only find
;

coffers were enriched with the gold of the salvation in the Catholic Chiurch."
Separatists, and pointed to the death of The last letters of St. Augustine were ad-
Marcellinus (a.d. 413) as a divine judgment dressed to a Donatist bishop Gaudentius.
upon their unrighteous judge. In a.d. 414 a Marcellinus had been succeeded by Dulcitius,
yet sterner decree announced that all Donatist who endeavoured to carry out the strong laws
church-buildings were to become the propertv against the Donatists with all possible mild-
of the Catholic church, and all Donatist clergy ness, and specially interested himself in re-
to be suspended and banished. Fines were straining the fanaticism of the Circumcellions.
doubled ; confiscation and banishment stared Unfortunately, some words of his were taken
the Separatists in the face ; their testimonv in to mean that he would punish them with death
courts of law was disallowed ; their social unless they returned to the church. Gaud-
condition was degraded to the lowest that ; entius and his congregation assembled in their
the penalties stopped short of death was owing church, determined to set fire to it and perish
chiefly to St. Augustine, who strove success- in the flames. Dulcitius contrived to stop
fully to prevent others from imbruing their this by a letter to Gaudentius, who in two
hands with the blood of mistaken fanatics. letters defended his proposed action and the
The church, to its credit be it recorded, by views of his party. Dulcitius appealed to St.
kindness and gentleness made the pain of Augustine, who answered Gaudentius's argu-
defeat less bitter to its foes, while it did not ments. His work, contra Gaudentium, in two
neglect to avail itself of the advantages result- books, goes over the old ground, also exposing
ing from victory. As the Catholic bishops the folly and crime of suicide.
returned to their homes they spread every- Donatism had now lived its life. No new
where the news of the victory, and in the champions appeared to defend it, and once
following Lent publicly proclaimed it in their again onlv did the schism lift up its head.
churches. Short summaries of the acts and Towards the end of the 6th cent, there was a
judgment of the conference were circulated, momentary revival of energy and proselytism ;

one being by St. Augustine himself. These but popes such as Leo and Gregory the Great
were mtended principally for Catholics
;
and imperial laws were irresistible. The
others, as St. Augustine's "ad Donatisfas post movement died out. The Donatists lingered
collectionem," were addressed to the sectarians on tillthe invasion of Africa by the Mahom-
who might be swayed by one-sided reports medans swept them away or merged them into
circulated by Donatist bishops, or by their some other schismatical body.
slanderous abuse of Marcellinus and the See Optatus, ed. Alha Spinaeus (Par. 1631),
Catholics. In 41 8 a council at Carthage passed ored. Dupin(Antw. 1702); S. Augustini, O^era,
resolutions regulating the proceedings, when vol. vii. (Par. ed. 1635) Vogel, "Donatisten"
;

Donatist bishops, clergy, and congregations in Herzog's Real-Encydop. Hefele, do. in


;

came back to the church- Nothing could Wetzer's Kirchenlexicon and Concil-GescMchte ;
280 DOROTHEA DOROTHEUS
Neander, Church History, iii. 258, etc ed. enemy of the title OeoroKos. Preaching in
Bohn Niedner, Lehrbuch d. Christlichen Kirch-
;
Constantinople not long before the council of
engeschichte, 324 Robertson, Hist, of the
; Ephesus, he declared that " if any one asserted
Christian Church, i. 175, etc. Hagenbach, ; that Mary was the mother of God he was
Kirchengeschichte, i. 547 Ribbeck, Donatus ; anathema " {Ep. Cyrill. ap. Baluz. Concil. col.
und Augustiniis (1858) M. Deutsch, Drei; 402). He attended that council, a.d. 431,
Actenstiicke zur Geschichte der Donatismus (Ber- signing the appeal to the emperor against the
lin, 1875); Harnack, Dog. Gesch. (3rd. ed.) iii. dominant party (Baluz. 701), and joining in
36 ff. Thomasius, Dog. Gesch. (anded.) i. 606
; the documents warning the clergy and people
ff. [J.M.F.] of Hierapolis and Constantinople against the
Dorothea, virgin, martyred with Theo- errors of Cyril, and announcing Cyril's excom-
philus the Advocate, and two other women, munication (ib. 706, 725). He was deposed
Christa and Callista, at Caesarea, in Cappa- and excommunicated by Cyril and his friends.
docia. Some doubt is entertained about these This deposition being confirmed by the im-
names, as they occur in no Greek menology or perial power, he was ordered by Maximinian's
martyrology but they are found in ancient
; synod at Constantinople to be ejected from
Roman accounts and details are given by
; his city and throne. His influence, however,
the monk Usuard, bp. Ado, and Rabanus. with his people was so great that they refused
They are celebrated on Feb. 6. Baronius, to receive his successor Secundianus, and drove
Bollandus, and Tillemont all place the death him from the city [Ep. Doroth. ad Cyrill.
of Dorothea in the persecution of Diocletian. Baluz. 750), whereupon Dorotheus was ban-
She was a young girl of Caesarea in Cappa- ished by the emperor to Caesarea in Cappa,-
docia, famed so widely for Christian piety that docia. Two letters of his to John of Antioch
when the governor Fabricius, Sapricius, or are preserved in the Synodicon (Nos. 78, 115 ;

Apricius arrived he had her brought before Baluz. 781, 816), expressing his anxiety at
him and tortured. Unable to persuade her Paul's setting out to Egypt and his distress
to marry, he sent her to Christa and CaUista at hearing that terms had been come to with
that they might induce her to give up her faith. C^Til, and a third (No. 137 ; Baluz. 840) to
She converted them whereupon the governor
; Alexander of Hierapolis and Theodoret, pro-
put them to death in a boihng cauldxon. posing a joint appeal to the emperor, [e.v.]
Dorothea was again tortured, and shewed Dorotheus (10), bp. of Thessalonica 515-
her joy for the martyrdom of Christa and 520. He wrote on April 28, 515, to pope
Callista and for her own sufferings. The Hormisdas, urging him to labour for the peace
governor, insulted and enraged, ordered her of the church. He testifies respect for the see
head to be cut off. On her way to execution of Rome, and wishes to see the heresies of Nes-
an advocate named Theophilus laughingly torius and Eutyches everywhere condemned.
asked her to send him some apples and roses But in the spring of 517 we find him a
from the paradise of her heavenly bridegroom. Eutychian schismatic, seeking to exercise over
The legend states that these were miracu- the province of Thessalonica the rights which
lously conveyed to him, although Cappadocia belonged to its metropolis when in com-
was then covered with snow. Theophilus was munion with the Catholic church. He per-
converted, tortured, and decapitated. secuted John bp. of Nicopolis, employing the
Dorothea's body is said to have been taken secular arm and persuading the emperor
to Rome, and preserved in the church across Anastasius to support his faction. Com-
the Tiber which bears her name. On her plaints were brought to pope Hormisdas, who
festival there is a ceremony of blessing roses pointed out that he might regain his rights if
and apples. Migne, Diet. Hagiograph. i. 779 ; he rejoined the Catholic church but the papal
;

Bollandus, Acta Sanct. Feb. i. p. 771 ; Tillem. legates Ennodius and Peregrinus were to bring
Hist. 407 (Paris, 1702).
eccl. p. [w.m.s.] the affair before the emperor, if bp. Dorotheus
Dorotheus (3), a presbyter of Antioch, or- should persist. The emperor Anastasius re-
dained by Cyril of Antioch (Hieron. Chron.) fused the message of the legates, tried to
c. A.D. 290, who with his contemporary Lucian corrupt them, and wrote to the pope saying
may be regarded as the progenitor of the that he could suffer insults, but not commands
sound and healthy school of scriptural her- (July II, 517). The death of the emperor
meneutics which distinguished the interpre- almost exactly a year afterwards altered the
ters of Antioch from those of Alexandria. balance against the Eutychians. Justin I.,
Eusebius speaks of him with high commenda- the Thracian, wrote, on his accession, to the
tion, as distinguished by a pure taste and pope, expressing his own wish and that of the
sound learning, of a wide and liberal education, principal Eastern bishops for the restoration
well acquainted not only with the Hebrew of peace between East and West. Hormisdas,
Scriptures, which Eusebius says he had heard with the advace of king Theodoric, sent a third
him expounding in the church at Antioch, legation to Constantinople, Germanus bp. of
with moderation {fxerpiios), but also with Capua, John a bishop, Blandus a presbyter,
classical literature. He was a congenital and others. To these men at Constantinople
eunuch, which commended him to the notice Hormisdas wrote to inquire personally into
of the emperor Constantine, who placed him the doings of the Eutychians at Thessalonica,
at the head of the purple-dye-house at T>Te and to cite bp. Dorotheus and his abettor
Eus. H. E. vii. 32 Neander, Eccl. Hist, vol! ii.
; Aristides the presbyter to Rome, that they
p. 528, Clark's trans. Gieseler, Eccl. Hist.
; might give account of their faith and receive
vol. i. p. 247, Clark's trans. [e.v.] resolution of their doubts. Two days before
Dorotheus (7), bp. of MartianopolisinMoesia the arrival of the legates, Dorotheus baptized
Secunda, and metropolitan a zealoussupporter ; more than 2,000 people, and distributed the
of the doctrines of Nesturios, and a determined Eucharistio bread in large baskets, so that
DOSITHEUS DOSITHEUS 281
multitudes could keep it by them. On their story of the 30 disciples of Dositheus, when he
arrival, the populace of Thessalonica, excited, says {contra Celsum, vi. 11) that he doubts
as the legates thought, by Dorotheus, fell whether there were then 30 Dositheans in the
upon them, and killed John, a Catholic, who world {ib. i. 57) or 30 Simonians. Recogni-
had received them in his house. News of tions and Homilies agree that Simon after his
these outrages arriving at Constantinople, the enrolment among the disciples of Dositheus,
emperor Justin promised to summon Doro- by his disparagement among his fellow-dis-
theus before him. The pope wrote to his ciples of their master's pretensions, provoked
legates, saying that they must see Dorotheus Dositheus to smite him with a staff, which
deposed, and take care that Aristides should through Simon's magical art passed through
not be his successor. Dorotheus was cited his body as if it had been smoke. Dositheus
before the emperor at Heraclea he appealed
; in amazement thereat, and conscious that he
to Rome, but the emperor thought it unad- himself was not the Standing one as he pre-
visable to send him there, as his accusers tended to be, inquired if Simon claimed that
would not be present. He was suddenly sent dignity for himself, and, being answered in the
away from Heraclea, and the pope's legates, affirmative, resigned his chief place to him and
bp. John and the presbyter Epiphanius, who became his worshipper. Soon after he died.
had remained at Thessalonica in his absence, Elsewhere (i. 54) the Recognitions represent
wrote in alarm to the remaining legates at Dositheus as the founder of the sect of the
Constantinople lest Dorotheus and others Sadducees, a sect which, according to their
should re-establish themselves in their sees by account, had its commencement only in the
liberal use of money. days of John the Baptist.
Dorotheus was now obliged by the emperor Next in order of the early witnesses to the
to send deputies to Rome to satisfy the pope. activity of Dositheus is Hippolytus, who, as we
He accordingly wrote an agreeable letter, say- learn from Photius {Cod. 121), commenced his
ing that he had exposed his life in defence of shorter treatise on heresies with a section on
bp. John, when the populace had fallen upon the Dositheans. We gather the contents of
him. Pope Hormisdas wrote back, saying this treatise from Epiphanius {Haer. 13),
that the crime was known to all the world, and Philaster (4), and Pseudo-Tertullian, and the
required clearer defence he remitted its ex-
; opening sentence of the latter, which relates
amination to the patriarch of Constantinople. to the Dositheans, is almost exactly repro-
Hormisd. Epp., Patr. fat. Ixiii. pp. 371, 372, duced by St. Jerome {adv. Luciferianos, iv.
408. 445, 446, 452, 468. 473, 481, 499. etc. ;
304). The first section of the work of Hip-
Ceillier, x. 616, 618, 619, 625 626, 628, 632, polytus apparently contained a brief notice
633. [W.M.S.] of pre-Christian sects, the foremost place being
Dositheus (1). The earliest ecclesiastical given to the Dositheans. Hippolytus seems
writers speak of a sect of Dositheans, which, to have adopted the account of the Recogni-
though it never spread far outside Samaria, tions as to the origin of the sect of the Sad-
seems to have had some considerable duration ducees, and to have also charged Dositheus
in that quarter. It was rather a Jewish sect with rejecting the inspiration of the prophets.
than a Christian heresy, for Dositheus was re- A statement that Dositheus was a Jew by
garded rather as a rival than as a disciple of birth was understood by Epiphanius to mean
our Lord, but trustworthy information as to that he had deserted from the Jews to the
his history and his doctrines is very scanty. Samaritans, a change which Epiphanius attri-
Only the name of himself and his sect occurs butes to disappointed ambition. Origen men-
in Hegesippus's list of heresies, preserved by tions Dositheus in several places {cont. Celsum
Eusebius {H. E. iv. 22). He is there placed U.S., tract 27 in Matt. vol. iii. 851 in Luc. iii.
;

next after Simon and Cleobius. The earliest 962 ; in Johann. iv. vol. iv. p. 237 de Princ.
;

detailed account of him is given in the Clem- iv. 1-17) ; but only in the last two passages
entine writings, and it is not unlikely that makes any statement which clearly shews that
their account was derived from the treatise on he had sources of information independent
heresies of Justin Martyr. The Recognitions of the Clementine Recognitions ; viz. in the
(ii. 8) and Homilies (ii. 24) agree in making commentary on John he speaks of books
Simon Magus a disciple of Dositheus, and the ascribed to Dositheus as being then current
Recognitions would lead us to suppose that among his disciples, and of their belief that
Dositheus was clearly the elder. They repre- their master had not really died and in de
:

sent him as already recognised as the prophet Princ. he asserts that Dositheus expounded
like unto Moses, whom Jehovah was to raise Exod. xvi. 29 so as to teach that persons were
up when Simon with difficulty and entreaty
; bound to remain to the end of the sabbath as
obtained election among his 30 disciples. The they found themselves at the beginning of it ;

Homilies make Simon and Dositheus fellow- if sitting, sitting to the end ; if lying, lying,
disciples of John the Baptist, to whom in Epiphanius, who may have read Dosithean
several places the author shews hostility. As books, adds, from his personal investigations,
our Lord, the Sun, had 12 apostles, so John, to the details which he found in Hippolytus.
the Moon, had 30 disciples, or even more He describes the sect as still existing, observ-
accurately answering to the days of a lunation, ing the Sabbath, circumcision, and other
291, for one of them was a woman. On John's Jewish ordinances, abstaining from animal
death Simon was absent studying magic in food, and many of them from sexual inter-
Egypt, and so Dositheus was put over his head course either altogether, or at least after
into the chief place, an arrangement in which having had children but the reading here is
;

Simon on his return thought it prudent to uncertain. They are said to have admitted
acquiesce. Origen, who was acquainted with the resurrection of the body, the denial of
the Recognitions, probably had in his mind the which is represented as an addition made by
;

282 DOSITHEUS DUBMCIUS, DUBRIC


the Sadducees to the original teaching of and who have felt the difficulty of making the
Dositheus. Epiphanius adds a story that founder of the sect of the Sadducees contem-
Dositheus retired to a cave, and there, under porary with John the Baptist, have adopted
a show of piety, practised such abstinence the solution that there must have been two
from food and drink as to bring his life to a Dosithei, both founders of Samaritan sects.
voluntary end. This story appears, in a But we may safely say that there was but one
slightly different shape, in a Samaritan sect of Dositheans, and that there is no evid-
chronicle, of which an account is given by ence that any ancient writer believed that it
Abraham Ecchellensis ad Hebed Jesu, Catal. had at different times two heads bearing the
lib. Chald. p. 162, Rom. 1653, the story there same name. Considering that the sect
being that it was the measures taken by the claimed to have been more than a century old
Samaritan high-priest against the new sect, when our earliest informants tried to get in-
especially because of their use of a book of the formation about its founder, we need not be
law falsified by Dositheus (there called Dou- surprised if the stories which they collected
sis), which compelled Dositheus to flee to a contain many things legendary, and which
mountain, where he died from want of food in do not harmonise. Probably the Dositheans
a cave. The notes of Ecchellensis are not were a Jewish or Samaritan ascetic sect,
given in Assemani's republication of Hebed something akin to the Essenes, existing from
Jesu (Bibl. Or. iii.). This account is taken before our Lord's time, and the stories con-
from Mosheim (v. infra), and from De Sacy's necting their founder with Simon Magus and
Chrestoniathie Arabe, i. 337. with John the Baptist may be dismissed as
It appears that the sect of Dositheans long merely mythical. The fullest and ablest dis-
maintained a local existence. In Hebed J esu's sertation on the Dositheans is that by Mosheirh .

catalogue of Chaldee books (Assemani, Bibl. {I nstitutiones Historiae majores,Christianae


Or. iii. 42) we read that Theophilus of Persia, 1739. i- 376). Cf. Harnack, Gesch. der Alt.-
who was later than the council of Ephesus, Chr. Lit. Theol. pp. 152 f. [g.s.]
wrote against Dositheus. And Photius {Cod. Dubhthach (Duach) (3), Mac Ui Lugair.
230) reports that he read among the works of When St. Patrick had come to Tara and was
Eulogius, patriarch of Alexandria {d. a.d. 608), preaching before king Leogaire, we are told
one entitled Definition against the Samaritans, that the only one who rose on the saint's
the argument of which is that the people of approach and respectfully saluted him was
Samaria being divided in opinion as to Dubhthach, the king's poet, who was the first
whether the " prophet like unto Moses " was to embrace the Christian faith in that place ;

Joshua or Dositheus, Eulogius held a synod and as Joceline says, " being baptized and
there (in the 7th year of Marcianus according confirmed in the faith, he turned his poetry,
to the MSS. ; if we correct this to the 7th year which in the flov/er and prime of his studies
of Maurice, it gives a.d. 588) and taught them he employed in praise of false gods, to a much
the divinity of our Lord. The independent better use ; changing his mind and style, he
notices of the continued existence of the sect composed more elegant poems in praise of the
make it not incredible that Eulogius may have Almighty Creator and His holy preachers."
encountered it. He appears to have really This was Dubhthach Mac Ui Lugair, descended
used Dosithean books, and reports that Dosi- from Cormach Caech, son of Cucorb, in Lein-
theus exhibited particular hostility to the ster. His name occupies a large space in
patriarch Judah, and if he claimed to be ancient Irish hagiology as a famous poet and
himself the prophet who was to come, he the ancestor of many well-known saints. He
would naturally be anxious to exclude the was the teacher of St. Fiacc (Oct. 12) of Sletty,
belief that that prophet must be of the tribe and recommended him to St. Patrick for the
of Judah. The form (Dosthes) given by episcopate. [Fiacc] In the compilation of
Eulogius for his name is a closer approach the Seanchus Mor, said to have been carried
than Dositheus to the Hebrew Dosthai, which on under the auspices of St. Patrick, St. Dubh-
it probably really represents. Drusius {de thach was one of the nine appointed to revise
Sectis Hebraeorum, iii. 4, 6) and Lightfoot the ancient laws. Colgan says he had in his
{Disquis. Chorograph. in Johann. iv.) shew that possession some of the poems of St. Dubhthach
this was, according to Jewish tradition, the {Tr. Thaum. 8 ns.) the Poems of St. Dubhthach
:

name of one of the priests who was sent (II. are given in O'Donovan's Book of Rights, and
Kings xvii. 27) to teach the manner of the God with translations and notes in Shearman's
of the land, and that the same name was borne Loca Patriciana. His dates are uncertain,
by other Samaritans. but his birth is placed after 370, his conversion
There seems no ground for Reland's con- in 433, and his death perhaps after 479. See
jecture {de Samaritanis, v.) that Dositheus Loca Patriciana, by the Rev. J. F. Shearman,
was the author of the Samaritan book of in Journ. Roy. Hist, and Arch. Assoc. Ir. 4 ser.
Joshua, since published by JuynboU (Leyden, vols. ii. iii., with Mr. R. R. Brash's papers in
1848). JuynboU, p. 113, quotes the testimony the same Journal, traversing several of Shear-
of an Arabic writer, Aboulfatah (given more man's assertions ; Ware, Irish Writers, i ;

fully, De Sacy, p. 335), that the sect still Ussher, Eccl. Ant. c. 17, wks. vi. 409-4.12, and
existed in the r4th cent. This writer places Lnd. Chron. a.d. 433 Todd, St. Patrick, 130,
;

Dositheus in the time of John Hyrcanus, i.e. 424. 446. [J.G.]


more than a hundred years before Christ. Dubricius, Dubrio [Dibnc, Dyfng), arch-bp.
Jost {Gesch. des Jtidenthums, i. 66) refers to of Caerleon, one of the most distinguished
Beer {Buck der Jubilden) as giving evidence names in the story of king Arthur as related
that the sect left traces in Abyssinia. Sev- by Geoffrey of Monmouth. Arthur makes
eral critics who have wished to accept all the him archbp. of the city of Legions (Galf. Mon.
statements of the above-mentioned authorities. Hist. viij. 12) ; he crowns king Arthur (ix. i)
DUBRICIUS, DUBRIC EBIONISM and EBIONITES 283

makes an oration to the British army prior terred with great pomp in the new cathedral
to the battle of Badon (ix. 4) ; and is the which had been rebuilt a short time before.
director of all the ecclesiastical pomp of the His death was commemorated on Nov. 4, and
court. He was grandson of Brychan king of his translation on May 29. The bones of the
Brecknockshire, and two localities, vaguely saint were with great difficulty discovered at
described as the banks of the Gwain near Bardsey, the oldest \vritings having to be
Fishguard and the banks of the Wye in Here- searched, as recorded in the Liber Landavensis
fordshire, are claimed for his birthplace. (ed. Rees, 1840, p. 329). Such in the main is
Rees decides in favour of the latter for the Rees's account of Dubricius (Essay on the
following reasons. In the district of Erchen- Welsh Saints, 171-193). Of ancient materials
field, in the county of Hereford, are a chiirch an anonymous Vita in Wharton (Angl. Sac. ii.
(Whitchurch) and two chapels (Ballingham 667) is important as having been evidently
and Hentland, subject to Lugwardine) dedi- compiled from earlier sources before the fables
cated to Dubricius, and all of them near the of Geoffrey of Monmouth appeared. Bene-
Wye. At Henllan (i.e. Old-church, now Hent- dict of Gloucester wrote his Vita (Angl. Sac. ii.
land) he is said to have founded a college, and 656) after Geoffrey. Capgrave has also a Life
to have remained seven years before removing (TV. L. A. f. 87). For others see Hardy, Des.
to Mochros much farther up the Wye, sup- Cat. i. 40-44. Haddan and Stubbs, Councils,
posed to be the present Moccas. In corrobo- i. 146, 147, should be consulted on Dubricius's
ration of this tradition there were lately re- Llandaff bishopric, and on his connexion with
maining, says Rees, on a farm called Lanfrother Archenfield or Erchenfield likewise Stubbs
;

in Hentland, traces of former importance. (Registrum, 154, 155) for the early and legend-
This author further suggests that St. Devereux, ary successions to Llandaff and Caerleon. See
seven miles to the west of Hereford, might also Ussher, Brit. Eccl. Antiq. Works, t. v.
be a Norman rendering of Dubricius. Rees 510; Chron. Index, sub ann. 490, 512, 520-
grants, in support of Ussher, that he may have 522. In regard to the period of Dubricius,
been appointed bp. of Llandaff about a.d. 470, authorities differ within limits similar to those
and that he was raised by Ambrosius Aurelius, assigned to St. David. The A nnales Cambriae
the brother of Uther and uncle of Arthur, to under a.d. 612 give the obit of Conthigirnus
the archbishopric of Caerleon on the death of and bp. Dibric, whom the editors of the Monu-
Tremounos or Tremorius, a.d. 490. It does menta, with an " ut videtur," name bps.
not appear that Wales was then divided into Kentigern and Dubricius (M. H. B. 831). The
dioceses, or that there were any established Liber Landavensis also (80) gives this date,
bishops' sees except Caerleon. The jurisdic- and it is adopted in Haddan and Stubbs (i.
tion of its archbishop, according to the rule 146). Hardy (Des. Cat. i. 41) refers to Alford's
observable elsewhere in the empire, would be Annates, a.d. 436, ss. 2, 3, 4, for some critical
co-extensive with the Roman province of remarks on the probable chronology of the
Britannia Secunda, and his suffragans were life of Dubricius. [c.h.]
'

so many chorepiscopi, without any settled


places of residence. The influence of Dub-
ricius and the liberality of Meurig ab Tewdrig
king of Glamorgan made the see of Llandaff
permanent whence Dubricius is said to have
;

been its first bishop. It appears, however, Ebionism and Ebionites. The name Ebion-
that after promotion to the archbishopric of ite first occurs in Irenaeus (c. 180-190). It
Caerleon he still retained the bishopric of was repeated, probably from him, by Hippo-
Llandaff, where he mostly resided, and from lytus (c. 225-235) and Origen (fA.D. 254), who
which he is called archbishop of Llandaff first introduced an explanation of the name.
;

but that the title belonged rather to Caerleon Others offered different explanations (e.g. Eus.
is clear since upon his resignation David fc. 340); while other writers fabricated a
became archbp. of Caerleon and Teilo bp. of leader, " Ebion," after whom the sect was
Llandaff. Dubricius is distinguished as the called (cf. Philastrius, Pseudo-Tertullian,
founder of colleges ; and besides those on the Pseudo- Jerome, Isidore of Spain, etc.).
banks of the Wye already mentioned he These explanations owe their origin to the
founded, or concurred in founding, the col- tendency to carry back Ebionism, or the date
legiate monasteries of Llancarvan, Caergor- of its founder, as far as possible. Thus the
" Ebionite " was (according to his own state-
worn, and Caerleon. In his time the Pelagian
heresy, which had been once suppressed by ment) the " poor " man (P"'3^), he who
St. Germanus, had increased again to such a voluntarily strove to practise the Master's
degree as to require extraordinary efforts for precept (Matt. x. 9) in Apostolic times (Acts
its eradication, and a synod of the whole iv. 34-37 cf. Epiphanius, Haer. xxx. c. 17)
; ;

clergy of Wales was convened at Brefi in and the correctness of the etymology is not
Cardiganshire. The distinction earned by shaken by the Patristic scorn which derived
David on that occasion gave Dubricius an the name from " poverty of intellect," or from
excuse for laying down his office, and, worn " low and mean opinions of Christ " (see Eus.
with years and longing for retirement, he H. E. iii. 27 Origen, de Princ, and contr. Cel.
;

withdrew to a monastery in the island of ii. c. 4; Ignat., Ep. ad Philadelph. c. 6, longer


Enlli or Bardsey, where he died. Rees, who recension). " Ebion," first personified by Ter-
puts the chronology of Dubricius and David tuUian, was said to have been a pupil of
early, gives a.d. 522 for the date. He was Cerinthus, and the Gospel of St. John to have
buried in the island, where his remains lay been directed against them both. St. Paul
undisturbed till a.d. 1120, when they were and St. Luke were asserted to have spoken
removed by Urban bp. of Llandaff and in- and written against Ebionites. The " Apos-
;

284 EBIONISM and EBIONITES EBIONISM and EBIONITES


tolical Constitutions " (vi. c. 6) them whose name has reached us. [Svmmachus (2).]
traced
back to Apostolic times Theodoret [Haer. Acquaintance with Hebrew was then confined
;

Fab. ii. c. 2) assigned them to the reign of to a few, and his Greek version of O.T. was
Domitian (a.d. 81-96). The existence of an produced for the benefit of those who declined
" Ebion " is, however, now surrendered. the LXX adopted by the orthodox Christians,
Ebionism, like Gnosticism, had no special or the Greek versions of Aquila and Theodo-
founder but that its birthplace was the Holy tion accepted by the Jews. Many, if not
;

Land, and its existence contemporary with the most, of the improvements made by the Vul-
beginning of the Christian Church, is, with gate on the LXX are due to the Ebionite
certain reservations, probabl)' correct. A ten- version (Field, Origenis Hexaplarum quae
dency to Ebionism existed from the first ;
supersunt, Preface).
gradually it assumed shape, and as gradually Ebionism presents itself under two principal
developed into the two special forms presently types, an earlier and a later, the former usually
to be noticed. designated Ebionism proper or Pharisaic
The records of the church of Jerusalem con- Ebionism, the latter, Essene or Gnostic Ebion-
tained in Acts prove how strong was the zeal ism. The earlier type is to be traced in the
for the Law of Moses among the Jewish con- writings of Justin Martyr, Irenaeus, Hippo-
verts to Christianity. After the fall of Jeru- lytus, TertuUian, etc. ; the latter in those of
salem (a.d. 70), the church was formed at Pella Epiphanius especially.
under Symeon, and the Jewish Christians were (a) Ebionism Proper. —
The term expresses
brought face to face with two leading facts : conveniently the opinions and practices of the
firstly, that the temple being destroyed, and descendants of the Judaizers of the Apostolic
the observance of the Law and its ordinances age, and is very little removed from Judaism. -

possible only in part, there was valid reason Judaism was to them not so much a prepara-
for doubting the necessity of retaining the tion for Christianity as an institution eternally
rest ; secondly, that if they adopted this good in itself, and but slightly modified in
view, they must expect to find in the Jews Christianity. Whatever merit Christianity
their most uncompromising enemies. As had, it possessed as the continuation and
Christians they had expected a judgment supplement of Judaism. The divinity of the
predicted by Christ, and, following His advice, Old Covenant was the only valid guarantee
had fled from the city. Both prediction and for the truth of the New. Hence such Ebion-
act were resented by the Jews, as is shewn not ites tended to exalt the Old at the expense of
only by the contemptuous term (Minim) they the New, to magnify Moses and the Prophets,
applied to the Jewish Christians (Gratz, and to allow Jesus Christ to be " nothing more
Gesch. d. Juden. iv. p. 8g, etc.), but by the than a Solomon or a Jonas " (Tertull. de Came
share they took in the death of the aged bp. Christi, c. 18). Legal righteousness was to
Symeon (a.d. 106). The breach was further them the highest type of perfection ; the
widened by the refusal of the Jewish Christians earthly Jerusalem, in spite of its destruction,
to take part in the national struggles —
notably was an object of adoration " as if it were the
that of Bar-Cocheba (a.d. 132) —
against the house of God " (Iren. adv. Haer. i. c. 22 [al.
Romans, by the tortures they suffered for c. 26]) ;its restoration would take place in the
their refusal, and lastly, by the erection of millennial kingdom of Messiah, and the Jews
Aelia Capitolina (a.d. 138) on the ruins of would return there as the manifestly chosen
Jerusalem. The Jews were forbidden to enter people of God. The Ebionites divided the
it, while the Jewish and Gentile Christians who life of Jesus Christ into two parts —
one
crowded there read in Hadrian's imperial de- preceding, the other following. His Baptism.
cree the abolition of the most distinctively In common with Cerinthus and Carpocrates,
Jewish rites, and practically signified their they represented Him to have been " the
assent by electing as their bishop a Gentile Son of Joseph and Mary according to the

and uncircumcised man Mark (Eus. H. E. ordinary course of human generation " (Iren.
iv. 6). Changes hitherto working gradually I.e.). They denied His birth of a Virgin,
now rapidly developed. Jewish Christians, word in Isa. vii. 14 not
translating the original
with predilections fcr Gentile Christianity and Trapd^vos, but vedvis- He was " a mere man,
its comparative freedom, found the way made nothing more than a descendant of David, and
clear to them ;others, attempting to be both not also the Son of God " (Tert. c. 14). But
Jews and Christians, ended in being neither, at His Baptism a great change took place. The
and exposed themselves to the contempt of event is described in the " Gospel according to
Rabbin as well as Christian (Gratz, p. 433) the Hebrews " current among them, and the
others receded farther from Christianity, and description is an altered expansion of the
approximated more and more closely to pure record of St. Matthew (iii. 13, 14). The Voice
Judaism. The Ebionites are to be ranked from heaven spake not only the words recorded
among the last. By the time of Trajan (q6- by the Evangelist, but also the words, " This
day have I begotten Thee" (Ps. ii. 7). A
117) political events had given them a definite
organization, and their position as a sect op-great light suddenly filled the place. John
"
posed to Gentile Christianity became fixed by the Baptist asked, " Who art Thou, Lord ?
the acts which culminated in the erection of and the Voice answered as before. John
Aelia Capitolina. prostrated himself at the feet of Jesus, " I
The Ebionites were known by other names, pray Thee, Lord, baptize me," but Jesus for-
such as " Homuncionites " (Gk. " Anthro- bade him, saying, " Suffer it to be so," etc., etc.
pians " or " Anthropolatrians ") from their (Epiph. Haer. xxx. 13). The day of Baptism
Christological views, " Peratici " from their was thus the day of His " anointing by election
settlement at Peraea, and " Symmachians " and then becoming Christ " (cf. Justin Martyr.
from the one able literary man among them Dial. c. Tryph. c. xlix.), it was the turning-
EBIONISM and EBIONITES EBIONISM and EBIONITES 285
point in thelife of Jesus : from that moment cision and the observance of the sabbath
He was endued with power necessary to fill (Epiph. adv. Haer. I. xxx. 16, 25).
His mission as Messiah but He was still
; In common with the Nazarenes and the
man. The Ebionites knew nothing of either Gnostic-Ebionites, the Pharisaic Ebionites
pre-existence or divinity in connexion with used a recension of the Gospel of St. Matthew,
Him. They are said to have freed themselves which they termed the " gospel according to
from the common Jewish notion that the the Hebrews." It was a Chaldee version
Messiah was to be an earthly king they were ; written in Hebrew letters, afterwards trans-
not shocked, as were so many of the Jews, at lated into Greek and Latin by Jerome, who
the humbleness of the birth, the sufferings, and declared it identical with the " gospel of the
crucifixion of Jesus but they agreed with
; Twelve Apostles " and the " gospel of the
them in looking upon the advent of Messiah Nazarenes " (see Herzog, Real- Encyklopddie,
as future, and in deferring the restitution of " Apokryphen d. N. Test." p. 520, ed. 1877).
all things to the millennium. The Ebionites In the Ebionite " gospel " the section corre-
proper insisted that the Law should be strictly sponding to the first two chapters of St. Matt,
observed not only by themselves but by all. was omitted, the supernatural character of
They quoted the words of Jesus (Matt. v. 17), the narrative being contradictory to their
and pointed to His practice (cf. Matt. xxvi. views about the person of Jesus Christ. It is
55 John vii. 14, etc.). It was the natural
;
difficult to say with certainty' what other
tendency of this view to diminish the value of books of the N.T. were known to them but
;

faith in Christ and a corresponding life. Of there is reason to believe that they (as also
far greater moment to them, and as necessary the Gnostic-Ebionites) were familiar with the
to salvation, was the due observance of cir- Gospels of St. Mark and St. Luke. The exist-
cumcision, the sabbath, the distinction be- ence among them of the " Protevangelium
tween clean and unclean food, the sacrificial Jacobi" and the IlepioSot tov U^rpov indicates
offerings —
probably with the later Pharisaic
additions (cf. Eus. H.E. vi. 17) and the —
their respect for those Apostles.

This, as the
{b) Essene or Gnostic Ebionism.
refusal of fellowship or hospitality to the name indicates, a type of Ebionism affect-
was
Gentiles (cf. Justin, c. xlvii.). They even ed by external influences. The characteristic
quoted the words of Jesus (Matt. x. 24, 25) features of the ascetic Essenes were reproduced
as their warrant, and affirmed their motto to in its practices, and the traces of influences
be " We also would be imitators of Christ "
:
more directly mystical and oriental were
(Origen, quoted by Schliemann). Jesus, they evident in its doctrines. The different phases
asserted, "was justified by fulfilling the Law. through which Ebionism passed at different
He was the Christ of God, since not one of the times render it, however, difficult to distin-
rest of mankind had observed the Law com- guish clearly in every case between Gnostic
pletely. Had any one else fulfilled the com- and Pharisaic Ebionism. Epiphanius (adv.
mandments of the Law, he would have been Haer. xxx.) is the chief authority on the
the Christ." Hence " when Ebionites thus Gnostic Ebionites. He met them in Cyprus,
fulfil the law, they are able to become Christs " and personally obtained information about
(Hippolytus, Refut. Omn. Haer. vii. 34). them (cf. R. A. Lipsius, Zur Quellen-Kritik
As might be expected, the Apostle Paul was d. Epiphanios, pp. 138, 143, 150 etc.).
especially hateful to them. They repudiated Their principal tenets were as follows :

his official character, they reviled him person- Christianity they identified with primitive re-
ally. In language which recalls that of the ligion or genuine Mosaism, as distinguished
Judaizers alluded to in Corinthians and Gala- from what they termed accretions to Mosaism,
tians, they represented him as a teacher or the post-Mosaic developments described in
directly opposed to SS. Peter, James, and the later books of O.T. To carry out this
John they repudiated his Apostolical author-
;
distinction they fabricated two classes of
ity because (as they affirmed) he had not been " prophets," Trpo^-^rat dXrjdeias, and irpocpfiTai
called of Jesus Christ Himself," nor trained
I' avvecxeios ovk dX-qdeias- In the former class
in the Church of Jerusalem. They twisted they placed Adam, Noah, Abraham, Isaac,
into a defamatory application to himself his
Jacob, Aaron, Moses, and Jesus in the latter
employment of the term " deceiver" (II. Cor. David, Solomon, Isaiah, Jeremiah, etc. In
;

vi. 8) he was himself one of the " many


;
the same spirit they accepted the Pentateuch
which corrupted the word of God " (ii. 17)
alone among the O.T. writings, and emascu-
;

he proclaimed " deliverance from the Law "


lated it rejecting whatever reflected ques-
only " to please men " (Gal. i. 10) and " com- ;

tionably upon their favourites. They held


mend himself " (II. Cor. iii. 1). His personal that there were two antagonistic powers ap-
character was held up to reproach as that of
one who " walked according to the flesh
" pointed by God Christ and devil — to the ;

(x. 2), puffed up with pride, marked by levity


former was allotted the world to come, to
the latter the present world. The conception
of purpose (iii. i) and even by dishonesty (vii.
of Christ was variously entertained. Some
2). They rejected his epistles, not on the affirmed that He was created (not born) of the
ground of authenticity, but as the work of an
Father, a Spirit, and higher than the angels
''
apostate from the Law " (Eus. iii. c. 27 ;

that He had the power of coming to this earth


;

Iren. I.e.). They even asserted that by birth when He would, and in various modes of
he was not a Jew, but a Gentile (wresting his
manifestation that He had been incarnate
words in Acts xxi. 39) who had become a in Adam, ;

and had appeared to the patriarchs


proselyte in the hope of marrying the High in
bodily shape others identified Adam and
;

1 nest's daughter, but that having failed in


Christ. In these last days He had come in
this he had severed himself from the
Jews and the person of Jesus. Jesus was therefore to
occupied himself in writing against circum- them a successor of Moses, and not of higher

286 EBlONiSM and EBtONlTES EBtOKiSM and EBlONtTES


authority. They quoted from their gospel a ed. Clark), exposed the decided antinomianism
saying attributed to Him, " I am He concern- which penetrated the teaching of the mythical
ing Whom Moses prophesied, saying, A pro- teacher and of the pupil, but it is evident that
phet shall the Lord God raise unto you like many " became victims of the delusion." The

unto me," etc. {Clem. Horn. iii. c. 53), and this immorality which the book in imitation of

was enough to identify His teaching with that the teaching of Callistus indirectly encour-
of genuine Mosaism. But by declining to fix aged probably attracted some, but would dis-
the precise moment of the union of the Christ credit the dogmatic views of the missionary.

with the man Jesus a union assigned by Ebionite Christianity did not, however, last
Pharisaic Ebionites to the hour of Baptism very long, neither did it exercise much influ-
they admitted His miraculous origin. ence west of Syria while it lasted. In Pales-
In pursuance of their conception that the tine the discomfiture accorded to " a certain
devil was the " prince of this world " they one " (probably Alcibiades) who came to
were strict ascetics. They abjured flesh-meat, Caesarea c. a.d. 247 maintaining the " ungodly
repudiating passages {e.g. Gen. xviii. 8) which and wicked error of the Elkesaites " (Eus.
contradicted their view ;they refused to taste vi. 38 ; cf. Redepenning, Origines, ii. p. 72)
wine, and communicated with unleavened was in keeping with the reception accorded to
bread and water. Water was to them " in less extreme Ebionite views from the time of
the place of a god " ; ablutions and lustra- the reconstitution of the mother-church at
tions were imperative and frequent. But they Aelia Capitolina. Judaism of every kind
held the married life in honour, and recom- gradually passed out of favour. The attitude
mended early marriages. To the observance of the bishops of Palestine in the Paschal con-
of the Jewish sabbath they added that of troversy of the 2nd cent, was that of men who ,

the Christian Lord's day. Circumcision was wished to stand clear of any sympathy with
sacred to them from the practice of the patri- Jewish customs; the language of Justin
archs and of Jesus Christ and they declined Martyr and of Hegesippus was the language
;

all fellowship with the uncircumcised, but of the representatives of the Samaritan and
repudiated the sacrifices of the altar and the the Hebrew Christianity of the day, not of the
reverence of the Jew for the Temple. In Ebionite. Outside of Palestine Ebionism had
common with the Ebionites proper, they even less chance of survival. From the very
detested St. Paul, rejected his epistles, and first, the instructions and memories of St. Paul
circulated stories discreditable to him. The and St. John excluded it from Asia Minor in ;

other Apostles were known to them by their Antioch the names of Ignatius, Theophilus,
writings, which they regarded as inferior to and Serapion were vouchers for Catholic doc-
their own gospel. trine and practice and the daughter-churches
;

The conjecture appears not improbable that of Gaul and Alexandria naturally preferred
as the siege of Jerusalem under Titus gave an doctrine supplied to them by teachers trained
impetus to Ebionism proper, so the ruin under in the school of these Apostles. Even in the
Hadrian developed Gnostic Ebionism. Not church of Rome, whatever tendency existed
that Gnosticism began then to affect it for the in Apostolic times towards Ebionism, the
first time, but that Gnostic ideas hitherto held separation — also in Apostolic times —
of the
in solution were precipitated and found a Judaizers was the beginning of the end which
congenial home among men who through no after-amalgamation under Clement could
contact with oriental systems in Syria were retard. The tone of the Shepherd of Hennas
already predisposed to accept them (cf. — a work which emanated from the Roman
Mansel, The Gnostic Heresies, lect. viii.). church during the first half of the 2nd cent,
This is further evident from the book of El- (see Lightfoot, Galatians, p. 99, n. 3) however —
chasai and the Clementine literature. These different from the tone of Clement and St. Paul,
works are the production of the Essene Ebion- is not Ebionite, as a comparison with another
ites and where they speak of Jesus Christ so-called Roman and certainly later Ebionite
;

— —
and His Apostles, His sayings and their lives, work the Clementine \vritings shews. The
they do so, not in the words of the canonical end of Ebionism had actually come in the
Gospels and Epistles, but with additions or Roman church when in the 2nd cent. Jewish

omissions, and a colouring which transforms practices notably as regards the observance
{e.g.) St. Peter, St. Matthew, and St. James of Easter — were unhesitatingly rejected. The
the Just into Essenes, and yet with that creed of the Christian in Rome was the creed
Gnostic tendency of thought which makes which he held from Irenaeus in Gaul and
them lineal descendants of the Judaizers who Polycarp in Asia Minor, and not from the
iniperilled the church at Colossae. (See Ebionite. When the above-named Alcibiades
Lightfoot, Colossians, p. 73, etc., and Essenism appeared in Rome (a.d. 219), Hippolytus de-
and Chrisiianity, p. 397, etc.) nounced his teaching (that of Elchasai) as that
The Essene or Gnostic-Ebionites differed of " a wolf risen up against many wandering
from the Pharisaic Ebionites in another re- sheep, whom Callistus had scattered abroad " :

spect. By missionary zeal, as well as by it came upon him as a novelty it had " risen
;

literary activity, they sought to obtain con- up," he says, "in our own day" {Haer. ix.
verts to their views. In the earlier part cc. 8, 12). This language is a proof of the
of the 3rd cent, the Ebionite Alcibiades of oblivion which had certainly befallen any
Apamea (Syria) repaired to Rome. He previous propagation of Ebionism in Rome.
brought with him the book of Elchasai, and For 200 years more Ebionism especially—

" preached unto men a new remission of sins of the Essene form lingered on. A few
(proclaimed) in the third year of Trajan's Ebionites were left in the time of Theodoret,
reign " (a.d. ioi). Hippolytus, who gives an about the middle of 5th cent. the rest had
;

account of the matter (Haer. ix. c. viii. etc., returned to strict Judaism and the utter re-
EDESIUS ELESBAAN 28?

jection of Christianity, or to a purer Chris- Varius Avitus Bassianus, as he was named


tianity than that which Ebionism favoured. at his birth, was of Phoenician descent, and
The Patristic notices on the Ebionites will born at Emesa, in Syria, c. a.d. 205. His
be found in the works referred to (cf. on their mother, Julia Soemia, and aunt, Julia Mam-
value, R. A. Lipsius, Die Qitellen d. altesten maea, were devoted to the worship of El-gabal
Ketzergeschichte, 1875). The literature on the (
= God the Creator, or, according to less
subject is further collected by (int. al.) Sclilie- probable etymology, God of the Mountains),
mann, Die Clementinen (1844) Ritschl, Die
;
and he and his cousin Alexander Severus were
Entstehung d. alt-katholischen Kirche (1857) ;
in early childhood consecrated as priests of
Lightfoot, Galatians, Dissertation III. St. Paul that deity, and the young Bassianus took the
and the Three (1876). [j.m.f.] name of the god to whom he ministered.
Edesius (3) shared the romantic fortunes of Julia Mammaea had eclectic tendencies, and
his brother Frumentius, the first bp. of Aux- by her invitation the great Origen came to
umis (Axum), in the 4th cent. The bio- Antioch (probably, however, after the death
graphical details at our disposal consist of a of Elagabalus), and was received with many
lengthy narrative, introduced, on the authority marks of honour. Eusebius, who relates the
of Edesius, by Rufinus into his Ecclesiastical fact (H. E. vi. 21), speaks of her as'a woman
History (lib. i. 9). This narrative has been of exceptional piety deoae^eaTaTt) e! KaL
(7i'i'rj

copied, with slight deviations, by Socrates Tis aw-q yeyovvia), and we may
trace her
(H. E. i. 19), Sozomen24), and Theodoret
(ii influence in the character of her son Alexander
(i. 23, 24). Cf.Baronias [Ann. 327,
also Severus. [Severus (2).] After spending
viii. ix. X.). Frumentius and Edesius, the some time at Nicomedia, where he entered on
young relatives of Meropius, a Syrian philo- his second consulship, Elagabalus proceeded
sopher (merchant), accompanied him on a in A.D. 219 (the year in which Callistus suc-
voyage of adventure to India. On their re- ceeded Zephyrinus as bp. of Rome) to the
turn to Phoenicia by way of the Red Sea, they capital. His short reign there was a frenzy
landed " at a certain port," where there was of idolatrous impurity. His jealousy and
" a safe haven," and there suffered from the suspicion led him to imprison Alexander
barbarous assault of the " Indians," who Severus, whose virtue attracted the admira-
murdered all the ship's company except the tion both of soldiers and people, and whom,
two youths, who were conveyed as prizes to at his mother's advice, he had adopted and
the king. He appointed Frumentius and proclaimed as Caesar soon after arriving in
Edesius as his treasurer and cup-bearer re- Rome. The troops rose and rescued their
spectively. By their means Christianity was favourite. The two sisters, each with her
introduced among " the Indians." Their son, appeared at the head of their supporters,
names in Ethiopian documents given by Lu- and the followers of Severus were victorious.
dolf (Hist. Eth. iii. 2) are Fremonatos and Syd- Soemia and the boy-emperor were thrown into
vacus (cf. Gesenius, Aethiop. Kirche in Iirsch the Tiber (hence the epithet Tiberinus after-
and Gruber, and Hoffmann in Herzog's wards attached to him in derision), and the
Encyc). The word " India" is used with the senate branded his name with eternal infamy.
same indefiniteness as are Ethiopia and Libya Dio. Cass. Ixxvii. 30-41, Ixxix. Herodian, ;

elsewhere. From the times of Aristotle to V. 4-23 Lamprid. Elagab.


; Capitolin. ;

those of Eratosthenes and of Hipparchus, Macrinus Eutrop. viii. 13


; Aurel. Victor, ;

India and Africa were believed to unite at de Caes. xxiii., Epit. xxiii.) [e.h.p.]
some unknown point S. of the Indian Ocean Elesbaan, a king, hermit, and saint of
(Diet. Anc. Geogr. vol. ii. p. 45, art. "India " Ethiopia during
;
the 6th cent. (Rome, Oct. 27 ;
Pliny, vi. 22-24). These " Indians " were Ethiopia, Ginbot, xx. May 15 cf. Ludolphus, ;

Abyssinians, as we see from the subsequent p. 415), whose exact story is difficult to trace.
career of Frumentius. The king, according (Cf. Ludolphus, History of Ethiopia, ed. 1684,
to Ludolf's Ethiopian Codex, was called p. 167 Lebeau, Histoire du Bas Empire, ed.
;

Abreha, and on drawing near his end, offered 1827 viii. 47, note 4 Walch, in Novi Com-
;

their liberty to the two youths. The queen- mentarii Sac. Reg. Gottingen. t. iv. Historia ;

mother earnestly besought them to remain, to Reruyn in Homerttide Saec. vi. Gestarxim, p. 4.)
undertake the education of the young prince The importance of the crusades on which his
Erazanes, and to assist her in the regency fame rests is attested by Gibbon, who asserts
during his minority. They consented, and that, had their purpose been attained, " Ma-
lost no opportunity of diffusing a knowledge homet must have been crushed in his cradle,
of Christ. They sought out Christian mer- and Abyssinia would have prevented a re-
chants trading in the country, gathered volution which has changed the civil and re-
Christian disciples, and built houses of prayer, ligious state of the world " (Decline and Fall,
" that worship might be offered, and the c. xlii. sub The details of the saint's
fin.).
j
Roman ecclesiastical routine observed " (Soz. wars and character are drawn from the Acta
I I.e.). They were not in orders, and Frumen- S. Arethae, extant in two forms the earlier :

tius went to Alexandria and asked for a bishop and more authentic, found by Lequien in the
to be sent to Abyssinia. Athanasius conse- Colbert Library (Oriens Christianus, ii. 428),
crated Frumentius himself. Edesius remained is referred by the Jesuit author of the Acta
at Tj're and became a presbyter of the church Sanctorum to the 7th cent, at latest the ;

there, where Rufinus met him. [h.r.r.] later is, at best, but the recension of Simeon
Elagabalus. The short reign of this feeble Metaphrastes, in the loth cent.
,;
and profligate emperor, though not coming It was probably during the later years of
i
into direct contact with the history of the Anastasius's reign that Elesbaan succeeded
j
Christian church, is not without interest as a his father Tazena on the throne of Ethiopia.
phase of the religious condition of the empire. His kingdom was greatly dependent for its
288 ELESBAAN ELESBAAN
welfare upon the goodwill and good order of At by treachery Dhu Nowas won an
last
the people of Yemen, the Homeritae, from entrance, promising to hurt none of the
whom it was separated by the narrow strait citizensand only demanding an exorbitant
of Bab-el-Mandeb for though the territory
: tribute but having entered, he began at once
;

of the Homeritae the merchants of Syria and the reckless massacre which has left its mark
of Rome came to the great port of Adulis (cf. even in the Koran (cf. Walch's paper in the
Assemani Bibl. Orientalis, i. p. 360), near Gottingen Commentarii, p. 25). Arethas and
whose ruins in Annesley Bay the Arabian Ruma his wife died with a defiant confession
traders still unlade their ships (cf. Henry Salt, on their lips more than 4,000 Christian men,
;

A Voyage to Abyssinia, c. ix. p. 451). When women, and children were killed (commem-
Elesbaan succeeded, the Homeritae had great- orated in the Roman calendar on Oct. 24) ;

ly obscured the Christianity which they had and from the fiery dyke into which the victims
received in the reign of Constantius, but the were thrown, Dhu Nowas received the name
language of Cosmas Indicopleustes (Migne, Saheb-el-Okhdud ("Lord of the Trench"). At
Patr. Gk. vol. Ixxxviii. p. 170) shews that it this time, probably in Jan. 524, Simeon, bp.
was not wholly extinct. The name of their of Beth-Arsam, had been sent by the emperor
king is variously written Dunaan and Dhu Justin, together with Abraham, a priest of
Nowas ; by John of Asia as Dimion ; by Constantinople, to gain the alliance of Mund-
Theophanes as Damian. He had been made hir III., king of the Arabians of Hira, a friend
king c. 490, by the people whom he had freed valuable alike for reasons of commerce and in
from their gross tyrant Laknia Dhu Sjenatir ;
regard to the war with Persia. As the ambas-
and having shortly after his accession forsworn sadors drew near the king (the story is told by
idolatry and embraced Judaism, determined Simeon in a letter to the abbat of Gabula),^
to enforce his new creed with the sword (cf. they were met by a crowd of Arabs crying that
Acta Sanctorum, Oct. vol. x. p. 693). In Christ was driven out of Rome and Persia and
retaliation for the sufferings of the Jews Homeritis and they learnt that messengers
;

throughout the Christian empire, he exacted were present from Dhu Nowas with letters to
heavy tolls from all Christian merchants who king Mundhir, in which they heard the long
came through his territory to the port of Aden recital of the treachery by which Negran had
and the Straits of Bab-el-Mandeb, and, been taken, of the insult to the bishop's tomb,
according to John of Asia (cf. Assemani, Bibl. of the slaughter of the Christians and the
Orientalis, i. 360), put many Christians to death. triumph of Judaism, the confession of the
Such action was injurious to the commerce martyr Arethas, and the speech of Ruma
of all the neighbouring peoples, but especially urging the women of Negran to follow her to
of Ethiopia ; and Elesbaan soon after his the abiding city of the divine Bridegroom,
accession sent a useless remonstrance, and then praying that the blood of the martyrs might
prepared for war. About a.d. 519 he crossed be the wall of Negran while it continued in the
the straits, utterly defeated the Arabian faith, and that she might be forgiven for that
forces, and driving the Jew to refuge in the Arethas had died first. They heard of her
hills, left a viceroy to bear Christian rule over brutal murder, and the appeal of Dhu Nowas
the Homeritae and returned to Ethiopia that Mundhir should at once enact a like
{ib. p. 362). The time of this expedition is massacre throughout his kingdom. Their
incidentally and approximately marked by own end must have seemed very near but ;

Cosmas Indicopleustes, who tells us that he the courage of a soldier who stood forth as
was at Adulis " iv rrj dpxv ^^s jiacriKeias 'loiw- spokesman of the many Christians in Mund-
rivov Tov 'Poijua/wf /SacriXews " (a.d. 518-527), hir's army decided the hesitation of the king,
when the king of the people of Axum, being and the ambassadors went away unhurt (but
about to war against the Homeritae, sent to apparently unanswered) to Naaman, a port in
ask the governor of Adulis for a copy of a the Arabian Gulf. There they heard more
certain inscription ; which copy Cosmas and fully the story of the massacre, and especially
another monk were charged to make (Migne, of the constancy of a boy, who was afterwards
Patr. Gk. vol. Ixxxviii. p. 102). known to the bp. of Asia at Justinian's
The death of the viceroy, probably in a.d. court. Simeon of Beth-Arsam thus closes his
522 or 523, whom Elesbaan had left in Yemen, letter, praying that the news may be spread
encouraged Dhu Nowas to come down from throughout the church and the martyrs re-
his hiding-place in the hills (" tanquam ceive the honour of commemoration, and that
daemon carne indutus," Acta Sanctorum, Oct. the king of Ethiopia may be urged to help
xii. 316), and reassert himself as king of the the Homeritae against the oppression of the
Homeritae and champion of J udaism. Choos- Jew (cf. Assemani, Bibl. Or. i. 364-379).
ing a season when the Arabian Gulf would be When this message reached Elesbaan, it was
an impassable barrier to the intervention of reinforced by a letter from Justin, elicited by
Elesbaan, he gathered a force which presently the entreaties of Dous Ibn Dzi Thaleban, one
numbered 120,000 men and, having put to of the few Christians who had escaped Dhu
death all Christians whom he could find and Nowas (cf. Wright, Early Christianity in
turned their church into a synagogue, pressed Arabia, p. 56). This letter is given in the
on to Negran, the head-quarters of the Acta S. Arethae where also it is told how the
;

Ethiopian vice-royalty, then held by Arethas patriarch of Alexandria, at the request of


the phylarch. He found the garrison fore- Justin, urged Elesbaan to invade Yemen,
warned and the gates closed nor were they offering up a litany and appointing a vigil on
;

opened at his threats, when coming to the his behalf, and sending to him the Eucharist
wall and holding up a wooden cross he swore in a silver vessel. Without delay Elesbaan
that all who would not blaspheme the Crucified collected a great army, which he divided into
and insult the sign of His suffering should die. two parts; 15,000 men he sent southwards
ELESBAAN ELESBAAN 289
to cross at Bab-el-Mandeb and, marching great church, and granting perpetual right of
through Yemen, divert the strength of Dhu asylum to the place where the bodies of the
Nowas's forces from the main body of the martyrs had lain, and then returned to Ethiopia
Ethiopians, which Elesbaan intended to send (Boll. A da SS. Oct. xii. 322), leaving a Christian
by sea to some place on the S. coast of Arabia. Arab named Esimiphaeus or Ariathus, to be
For the transport of these latter he appro- his viceroy over the conquered people. A part
priated 60 merchant vessels then anchored in of Elesbaan's army, however, refused to leave
his ports, adding ten more, built after the the luxury of Arabia Felix, and not long
native fashion, the planks being held together after set up as rival to Esimiphaeus one
by ropes. On the eve of the enterprise he Abrahah or Abraham, the Christian slave of a
went in procession to the great church of Roman merchant, who was strong enough to
Axum, and there, laying aside his royalty, shut up the viceroy in a fort and seize the
sued in forma pauperis for the favour of Him throne of Yemen. A force of 3,000 men was
Whose war he dared to wage praying that
;
sent by Elesbaan, under a prince of his house,
his sins might be visited on himself, and not whom some call Aryates or Arethas, to depose
on his people. Then he sought the blessing, the usurper ; and it seems that Abrahah, like
counsel, and prayers of St. Pantaleon and ; Dhu Nowas, sought safety among the moun-
received from within the doorless and window- tains. But he soon (c. 540) came down and
less tower, where the hermit had lived for 45 confronted the representative of Elesbaan ;

years, the answer: ""Ecroj avv irot 6 tri'/x- and at the critical moment the Ethiopian
^aaiXevuf aot." Thus the army was sent on troops deserted and murdered their general.
its twofold route. To maintain his supremacy and avenge his
For the 15,000 Bab-el-Mandeb was indeed kinsman, Elesbaan sent a second army but ;

a gate of tears :they died of hunger, wander- this, loyally fighting with Abrahah, was
ing in the desert. The main body was safely utterly defeated, and only a handful of men
embarked, and sailed S. down the Gulf of returned to Ethiopia. The Arabic historians
Arabia towards the straits which Dhu Nowas record that Elesbaan swore to yet lay hold of
;

had barred by a huge chain, stretched across the land of the Homeritae, both mountain
the space of two furlongs from side to side. and plain, pluck the forelock from the rebel's
Over this, however, first ten ships and then head, and take his blood as the price of Ary-
seven more, including that of the Ethiopian ates's death and they tell of the mixed
;

admiral, were lifted by the waves the rest cunning and cowardice by which Abrahah
;

were driven back by stress of weather, but satisfied the Ethiopian's oath, and evaded his
presently, the chain being, according to one anger, winning at last a recognition of his
account, broken, forced the passage, and dignity. Procopius adds that Abrahah paid
passing the other seventeen, cast anchor tribute to Elesbaan's successor and the ;

farther along the coast. Meanwhile Dhu Homeritae remained in free subjection to
Nowas, having first encamped on the W. shore, Ethiopia almost to the end of the century.
where he thought his chain would force the Records are extant, almost in the very words
Ethiopians to land, hurried from his position, of the ambassadors, of two embassies from
and leaving but a few men to resist the Justinian to Elesbaan. Joannes Malala, in
smaller fleet, watched with his main army writing of the first, had the autograph of the
the movements of the rest. Those on the envoy whom Procopius (de Bella Perstco, i. 20)
17 ships under the Ethiopian admiral easily calls Julian Photius has preserved, in the
;

effected a landing near Aden, and defeating the third codex of his Bibliotheca, Nonnosus's story
troops opposed to them, pressed on to the of his experience in the second mission. Julian
chief city, Taphar, or Taphran, which sur- must have been sent before 531, for Cabades
rendered immediately (cf. Wright, op. cit. was still living, and, according to Procopius,
58-60). Discouraged by this disaster, the Esimiphaeus was viceroy of Homeritis. He
main body of the Arabians offered a feeble was received by Elesbaan, according to his
resistance ; and Dhu Nowas saw that his own account, with the silence of an intense
downfall was very near. According to the joy for the alliance of Rome had long been
;

Arabian historians, he threw himself from the the great desire of the Ethiopians. The king
cliff and died in the waves according to the was seated on a high chariot, drawn by four
;

Acta S. Arethae, he bound his seven kinsmen elephants caparisoned with gold he wore a ;

in chains, and fastened them to his throne, loose robe studded with pearls, and round his
lest they should fail to share his fate and so loins a covering of linen embroidered with
;

awaited death at Elesbaan's own hand. The gold. He received Justinian's letter with
Arabic writers are unsupported in their story every sign of respect, and began to prepare his
of the useless resistance of a successor Dhu forces to take part in the Persian war even
Giadan it was probably at the death of Dhu before Julian was dismissed from his court
;

Nowas that the kingdom of the Homeritae with the kiss of peace (Johannis Malalae,
ended, and Yemen became a province of Chronographia, xviii. Bonn. ed. pp. 457, 458).
Ethiopia. At Taphar Elesbaan is said to have Malala records no sequel of these preparations
;
built a church, digging the foundations for Procopius complains that none occurred.
seven days with his own hands and from
; The second embassy was sent primarily to
Taphar he wrote of his victory to the patriarch Kaisus or Irarulcays, the prince of the Chindini
of Alexandria. A bishop was sent from and Maaddeni, and only secondarily to the
Alexandria and appointed to the see of Ne- Homeritae and Ethiopians, probably in the last
gran, but there are doubts as to both the years of Elesbaan's reign. Nonnosus the envoy
orthodoxy and identity of this bishop. The belonged to a family of diplomatists. But
King restored Negran, entrusting it to Are- Photius does not state the purpose or result
thas's son, rebuilding and endowing the of this journey only telling of the great herd
;

19
290 ELEUSIUS ELEUTHERUS
of 5,000 elephants which Nonnosus saw be- Basil of Ancyra, and others, to communicate
tween Adulis and Axuna, and the pigmy the result of the synod to Constantius, Eleusius
negroes who met him on an island as he sailed denounced the blasphemies attributed to
away from Pharsan (Photii, Bibliotheca, Eudoxius so vigorously that the latter was
Bekker's ed. pp. 2, 3). compelled by the emperor's threats to re-
The story of Elesbaan's abdication and se- tract (Theod. H. E. ii. 23). [Eudoxius ;

clusion is told in the Acta S. Arethae. Having Eustathius ofSebaste.] The wily Acacians,
accepted the fealty and recognized the royalty however, speedily gained the ear of Constan-
of Abrahah, and having confirmed the faith tius, and secured the deposition of their semi-
of Christ in Homeritis, he laid aside his crown Arian rivals, including Eleusius, a.d. 360.
and assumed the garb of a solitary. His cell The nominal charge against him was that he
is still shewn to the traveller ; it was visited had baptized and ordained one Heraclius of
in 1805 by Henry Salt, and has been elaborate- Tyre, who, being accused of magic, had fled
ly described by Mendez and Lefevre. There to Cyzicus, and whom, when the facts came
the king remained in solitude and great to his knowledge, he had refused to depose.
asceticism ; and the year of his death is un- He was also charged with having admitted to
known. His crown he sent to Jerusalem, holy orders persons condemned by his neigh-
praying that it might be hung " in conspectu bour. Maris of Chalcedon (Soz. H. E. iv. 24 ;

januae vivifici sepulchri." [f-p-] Socr. H. E. ii. 42). His old patron, Mace-
Eleuslus (2), bp. of Cyzicus, a prominent donius of Constantinople, who had been got
semi-Arian in the 2nd half of the 4th cent., rid of at the same time, wrote to encourage
intimately connected with Basil of Ancyra, him and the other deposed prelates in their
Eustathius of Sebaste, Sophronius of Pom- adherence to the Antiochene formula and to
peiopolis, and other leaders of the Macedonian the " Homoiousian " as the watchword of^
party. He is uniformly described as of high their party (Socr. H. E. ii. 45; Soz. H. E. iv.
personal character, holy in life, rigid in self- 27). The subtle Anomoean Eunomius was
discipline, untiring in his exertions for what intruded into the see of Cyzicus by Eudoxius,
he deemed truth, and, according to St. Hilary, who had succeeded Macedonius (Socr. H. E.
more nearly orthodox than most of his iv. 7 ; Philost. H. E. v. 3). Eunomius failed
associates (Hilar, de Synod, p. 133). The to secure the goodwill of the people who re-
people of his diocese are described by Theo- fused to attend where he officiated, and built
doret as zealous for the orthodox faith, and a church for themselves outside the town.
well instructed in the Holy Scriptures and in On the accession of Julian, a.d. 361, Eleusius,
church doctrines, and he himself as a man with the other deposed prelates, returned to
worthy of all praise (Theod. H. E. ii. 25 ; his see, but was soon expelled a second time
Haer. Fab. iv. 3). Though usually found by J ulian, on the representation of the heathen
acting with the tyrannical and unscrupulous inhabitants of Cyzicus, for his zeal against
party, of which Macedonius was the original paganism (Soz. H. E.v. 15). At Julian's death
leader, and sharing in the discredit of their Eleusius regained possession. He took the
measures against the holders of the Homo- lead at the Macedonian council of Lampsacus,
ousian faith, Eleusius was uncompromising a.d. 365 (Socr. H. E. iv. 4). At Nicomedia,
in opposing the pronounced Arians, by whom A.D. 366, he weakly succumbed to Valens's
he was persecuted and deposed. He held threats of banishment and confiscation, and
office in the Imperial household when sud- accepted the Arian creed. Full of remorse, he
denly elevated to the see of Cyzicus by assembled his people on his return to Cyzicus,
Macedonius, bp. of Constantinople, c. 356 (Soz. confessed and deplored his crime, and desired,
H. E. iv. 20; Suidas, s.v. 'E\ei5<nos). He since he had denied his faith, to resign his
signalized his entrance on his office by a vehe- charge to a worthier. The people, devotedly
ment outburst of zeal against the relics of attached to him, refused to accept his re-
paganism at Cyzicus. He shewed no less de- signation (it. 6; Philost. H. E. ix. 13). In
cision in dealing with the Novatianists, with 381 Eleusius was the chief of 36 bishops of
whom a community of persecution had caused Macedonian tenets summoned by Theodosius
the Catholics to unite. He destroyed their to the oecumenical council of Constantinople
church, and forbade their assemblies for wor- in the hope of bringing them back to Catholic
ship (Socr. H. E. ii. 38; Soz. H. E. iv. 21; v. doctrine. This anticipation proved nugatory ;

15). He soon acquired great influence over Eleusius and his adherents obstinately refused
his people by his religious zeal and the gravity all reconciliation, maintaining their heretical
of his manners. He established in his diocese views on the Divinity of the Holy Ghost (Socr.
a large number of monasteries, both for males H. £. V. 8 ; Soz. H. E. vii. 7). Similarly at
and females (Suidas, «.s.). He took part in the conference of bishops of all parties in 383,
the semi-Arian council at Ancyra 358 a.d. to which Eleusius was also invited as chief of
(Hilar, de Synod, p. 127), and was one of the the Macedonians, the differences proved irre-
members deputed to lay before Constantius at concilable, and the emperor manifested his
Sirmium the decrees they had passed, con- disappointment by severe edicts directed
demnatory of the Anomoeans (Hilar, u.s. ;
against the Macedonians, Eunomians, Arians,
Soz. H. E. iv. 13 ; Labbe, Concil. ii. 790). and other heretics (Tillem. Mem. Eccl. vol. vi.
At the council of Seleucia, a.d. 359, he replied passim). [e-v.]
to the proposition of the Acacians to draw Eleutherus (1), bp. of Rome in the reigns
up a new confession of faith, by asserting of Marcus Aurelius and Commodus, during
that they had not met to receive a new faith, 15 years, 6 months, and 5 days, according to
but to pledge themselves for death to that the Liberian catalogue. Eusebius (H. E. v. '

of the fathers (Socr. H. E. ii. 39, 40). Being prooeni.) places his accession in the 17th year
commissioned with Eustathius of Sebaste. of Antoninus Verus {i.e. Marcus Aurelius), viz.
ELEUTHERUS ELIAS 2dl

A.D. 177 which would make 192 the date


; tion of it in any historian. It seems pretty
of his death. But the consuls given in the certain that it was from a Roman catalogue
Liberian catalogue as contemporary with his that Bede got his information, Gildas, his
election and death are those of 171 and 185. usual authority, being silent on the subject.
Hegesippus, quoted by Eusebius {H. E. iv. In the hands of chroniclers after Bede the
22),states that when he himself arrived in story receives several and growing additions.
Rome, Eleutherus was deacon of Anicetus, who The story is first found in its simplest form
was then bishop, and became bishop on the in the Pontifical annals at Rome, in the 6th
death of Soter, the successor of Anicetus (cf. cent.; is introduced into Britain by Bede in
Iren. adv. Haeres. iii. 3, and Jerome, de Vir. the 8th grows into the conversion of the
;

Illwitr. c. 22). whole of Britain in the 9th ; and appears


Eleutherus was contemporary with the full-fledged, enriched with details, and con-
Aurelian persecution ;and after the death of nected with both Llandaff and Glastonbury,
Aurelius the Christians had peace, in conse- in the 12th. There is, however, nothing
quence, it is said, of the favour of Marcia, the improbable in the original story itself, and it
concubine of Commodus ;the only recorded is more likely to have had some fact than pure
exception in Rome being the martyrdom of invention for its origin, and the Welsh tradi-
ApoUonius in the reign of Commodus (Eus. tions about Lleirwg, though unnoticed by
H. E. V. 21 Jerome, Catal. c. 42). The chief
;
Gildas, may have been ancient and genuine
sufferers under Aurelius were the churches of ones, independent of Bede's account. Lin-
Asia Minor and those of Lyons and Vienne gard takes this view, laying stress on the
in Southern Gaul, a.d. 177. In letters to dedication of churches in the diocese of Llan-
Eleutherus by the hand of Irenaeus the latter daff to Lleirwg and the saints associated with
churches made known, " for the sake of the him, and supposing him to have been an
peace of the churches " {H. E. v. 3), their independent British prince outside the
own judgment, with that of their martyrs Roman pale. In confirmation of the story
while in prison, respecting the claims of is alleged further the fact that, shortly after
Montanus to inspiration. the time of Eleutherus writers first begin to
The fact of the bp. of Rome having been speak of British Christianity. For TertuUian,
especially addressed on this occasion has been Origen, and Arnobius are the first to allude
adduced as an acknowledgment in that early to the triumphs of the Gospel, though partial,
age of his supreme authority. But the letters in this remote island. What they say, how-
of the martyrs to Eleutherus do not appear, ever, is quite consistent with the earlier, and
from Eusebius, to have had any different other than Roman, origin of the British
purport from those sent also to the churches church ; and it may be that it was the very
of Asia and Phrygia, nor does their object fact of their having borne this testimony that
seem to have been to seek a judgment, but suggested Eleutherus, a pope shortly anterior
rather to express one, in virtue, we may to their date, as one to w-hom the mission
suppose, of the weight carried in those days might be assigned. —
[j.b v.]
by the utterances of martyrs. Their having Elias (1) I., bp. of Jerusalem, a.d. 494-313 ;

addressed Eleutherus, as well as the churches an Arab by birth who was educated with
where Montanus himself was teaching, is suffi- Martyrius, in one of the Nitrian monasteries.
Driven from Egypt by Timothy Aelurus,
ciently accounted for by the prominence of the
Roman bishop's position in the West, about the two friends took refuge, a.d. 457, in
the laura of St. Euthymius, who received
which there is no dispute. Of the course taken
by Eleutherus with respect to Montanus no- them with great favour, and predicted that
thing can be alleged with certainty. they would both be bishops of Jerusalem.
Besides the heresy of Montanus, those of After a time they quitted the laura, and Elias
Basilides, Valentinus, Cerdo, and constructed a cell at Jericho. In 478 Martyr-
Marcion
were then at their height, and gained many ius succeeded Anastasius as bp. of Jerusalem,
adherents in Rome. Valentinus and Cerdo and was followed by Sallustius in 486, and in
had come there between 138 and 142 Mar- 494 by Elias. Moschus records that Elias
;

cion a little later. There is, however, some practised total abstinence from wine both as
difficulty in placing the sojourn in Rome of monk and bishop {Prat. Spiritual, c. 25). His
these heresiarchs in the episcopate of Eleu- residence became the nucleus of a collection
therus ;Valentinus, according to other ac- of cells of ascetics, which developed into a
counts, having died previously (see Tillem. On monastery adjacent to the church of the
Eleutherus). Florinus and Blastus also, Anastasis (Cyril. Scythop. Vit. S. Sabae, c. 31).
two degraded presbyters of Rome, broached When Elias succeeded to the patriarchate, the
during the episcopate of Eleutherus certain Christian world exhibited a melancholy spec-
heresies, of which nothing is known except tacle of discord. There were at least four
what may be gathered from the titles of certain great parties anathematizing one another.
lost treatises written against them by Ire- When the Monophysites (Acephali) in Syria,
naeus (Eus. H. E. v. 14, 15, 20, Pacian, Ep. i.). under the leadership of Xenaias of Hierapolis,
The visit of Irenaeus to Eleutherus gave the broke into open insurrection, treating as
latter opportunity to become acquainted with heretics all who acknowledged the two natures,
the prevalent heresies, against which he be- Elias was one of the chief objects of their
came the most distinguished champion. attack. In 509 they demanded a confession
Especially interesting to Englishmen is the of his faith, and Anastasius required him to
story connecting Eleutherus with the origin convene a council to repudiate the decrees of
of British Christianity (Bede, H. E. c. iv.). Chalcedon. Elias declined, but drew up a
[Lucius (16)]. This account, written some letter to the emperor, containing a statement
500 years after the event, is the earliest men- of his belief, accompanied by anathemas of

292 ELKESAI, £LKESAITES ELKESAI, ELKESAITES


Nestorius, Eutyches, Diodorus, and Theodore a later witness, professes to speak from per-
of Mopsuestia. This was entrusted to sonal acquaintance with the book, and this
members of the Acephali to convey to Con- is confirmed by his coincidence in a number of
stantinople. When opened, it was found to details with the other authorities. We may
contain an anathema against the two natures. count the Pseudo-Clementine writings as a
Elias reproached the bearers with having fourth source of information concerning the
falsified the document and thus laid him open books of Elkesai. Hippolytus states that the
to the charge, which he found it very hard to book, according to its own account, had been
refute, of having condemned the council of obtained from Seres, in Parthia, by a righteous
Chalcedon (Evagr. H. E. iii. 31 Theod. Led.
; man named Elkesai that its contents had
;

p. 561 ;
Theophan. Chronogr. pp. 129, 130). been revealed by an angel 96 miles high,
Macedonius having been deposed a.d. 511, and accompanied by a female of corresponding
Timotheus, an unscrupulous Monophysite size that the male was Son of God, and the
;

monk, appointed to the see of Constantinople, female was called Holy Spirit. Epiphanius
Elias, whose principle appears to have been speaks of Elkesai as a false prophet. Pro-
to accept the inevitable and to go the ut- bably this Elkesai was an imaginary person-
most possible length in obedience to the ruling age, and we must reject the account of
powers, seized on the fact that he had ab- Epiphanius who assigns to him a certain part
stained at first from anathematizing the coun- in the history of the Ebionite sects.
cil of Chalcedon, as a warrant for joining com- The book is evidently of Jewish origin.
munion with him and receiving his synodical Jerusalem is made the centre of the world's
letter. Elias could not contend against his devotion, and the right rule of prayer is to
many unscrupulous enemies, and in 513 was turn not necessarily to the East, but towards
driven from his see, dying in 518 in banish- Jerusalem. The names of the book are formed
ment at Aila on the Red Sea shore, aet. 88. from Hebrew roots. A further mark of
Tillem. Mem. Eccl. xvi. ; C>Til. Scythop. Vita Aramaic origin is the representation of the
S. Euthymii ; and other authorities cited Holy Spirit as a female. The book ordered
above. [e.v.] compliance with ordinances of the Jewish
Elkesai, Elkesaites ('HXxaa-ai, Hippolytus ;
law, but condemned the rite of sacrifice, so
HXfa/, 'E\Kiaaa1oi, Epiphanius ;
"E\K€<Ta{.Tai, involving the rejection of parts of O.T., and
Origen). A book bearing the name of £/^fsai of the eating of flesh. The superiority of the
and purporting to contain angelic revelations, forgiveness of sinsby the washing of water over
was, at the end of the 2nd cent., in high repute that by the fire of sacrifice is based on the
among certain Ebionite sectaries, who were superiority of water to fire (Hipp. ix. 14; Epiph.
most numerous in the district E. of the lower Haer. 19, p. 42 ; Clem. Rec. i. 48; Horn. xi.
Jordan and the Dead Sea. This book first 26). It is taught that Christ is but a created
became known to orthodox writers in the 3rd being, but the greatest of creatures, being
cent., and we have accounts of it from three Lord over angels as well as over every other
independent primary soiurces, Hippolytus, created thing. The name Great King is
Origen, and Epiphanius. Hippolytus [Ref. ix. applied to Him (Epiph. Haer. 19, p. 4 1 Hipp,
;

12, p. 292) gives severalextracts, and statesthat ix. 15; Horn. viii. 21). The formula of
it was brought to Rome by a certain Alcibiades, baptism runs. In the name of the Most High
a native of Apameia in Syria, and indicates God and of His Son, the Great King but this
;

that the time was during, or immediately after, Great King is not exclusively identified with
the episcopate of Callistus i.e. c. a.d. 222. J esus of Nazareth, for He appeared in the world
The great controversy then agitating the in successive incarnations, Adam being the
church of Rome was whether, and with what first. The book agreed with the Clementines
limitations, forgiveness might be bestowed on in complete rejection of St. Paul. It taught
grievous post-baptismal sin. Hippolytus took the lawfulness of denying the faith under per-
the side of rigour and Callistus of leniency. secution (Eus. vi. 38 Epiph. 19), thus getting
;

This book of Elkesai announced a new method rid of the class of offences as to the forgiveness
of forgiveness of sin, asserted to have been of which there was then most controversy.
revealed in the third year of Trajan, by which The statement of the book that the revela-
any person, no matter of what sins he might tion was made in the 3rd year of Trajan is of
have been guilty (some of the very grossest no historic value. The work, however, which
are expressly mentioned), might olatain for- was the common groundwork of the Clement-
giveness by submitting to a new baptism with ine Recognitions and Homilies [Clementine
the use of a certain formula of which we shall Literature] asserts that a new gospel was
speak presently. A similar baptism was published (the Homilies add "secretly ") after
prescribed as a remedy for the bite of a mad the destruction of the Holy Place ; and it
dog or a serpent or for disease. Hippolytus seems on other grounds probable that a number
takes credit for resisting the teaching of Alci- of Essenes, who had always held the Temple
biades, and blames Callistus for having, by sacrifices in abomination, were brought to
the laxity of his doctrine and practice con- recognize Jesus as the true Prophet when the
cerning church discipline, pre-disposed men's destruction of the Temple and the abohtion
minds to the easy methods of forgiveness of its sacrifices fulfilled His prediction. At
expounded in this book. Origen, in a frag- this time, then, probably arose those Ebionite
ment of a homily on the 82nd Psalm, pre- sects which combined a certain reverence for
served by Eusebius (H. E. vi. 38) and assigned our Lord's utterances, and an acknowledgment
by Redepenning to a.d. 247, speaks of the of Him as a divine prophet, with the retention
teaching of the Helcesaites, some specimens of a host of Essene usages and doctrines.
of which he gives, as having then but lately Hence the book of Elkesai may have been, as
troubled the churches. Epiphanius, though it professed to be, a considerable time in secret
ELPIDIUS ENCRATITES 293
circulation among the Ebionite sects before as joint patron of Spain with St. James (San-
Alcibiades brought it to Rome, though it is doval, Fundaciones de San Benito en Espana,
also possible that it may have been then of Madrid, 1601). The only original source of
quite recent manufacture. information about him is his Life by St. Braulio
It would seem to be long before the sect of bp. of Saragossa, written about 50 years after
Elkesaites disappeared. En-hedim, an Arabic his death, on the testimony of four of his
author (c. a.d. 987) quoted by Chwolson {Die disciples. St. Braulio gives no dates and
Sabier, i. 112, ii. 543), tells of a sect of Sabeans no names of parents, but the common tradi-
of the Desert who practised frequent religious tion is that St. Emilianus was born c. 473, and
washings, and who counted one El-Chasaiach died c. 572. His birthplace and the site of
as their founder. See Ritschl, Zeitschrift fiir his oratory have caused much controversy,
histor.Theol. (1853), pp. sy^^sqq., Entstehungder Castile claiming him as born at Berceo, close
altkatholischen Kirche, pp. 234 sqq. Hilgenfeld,
; to the existing monastery of San Millan, while
Nov. Test, extra Canonem Receptum, iii. 153, Aragon urges Verdeyo, near Calatayud.
where all the fragments of the book are col- He began life as a shepherd, and while
lected; Uhlhorn, Horn. u. Recog. des Clem. Rom. following his flock over the mountains had
p. 392 ;and Lightfoot's Dissertation on the the dream which caused his conversion. He
Essenes, "Ep.toColossians,"pp. iiSsqq. [g.s.] betook himself to St. Felix, a neighbouring
ElpldlUS (8), bp. of Laodicea in Syria at the hermit, for instruction in Catholic belief and
close of the 4th cent, and opening of the 5th. practice. He soon left Verdejo for the
He was originally a priest of Antioch under mountains, wandering N.W. into the remotest
Meletius, whose confidence he enjoyed and parts between Burgos and Logrono. For 40
with whom he resided ((TvaKt)vo%) (Theod. years he lived a hermit's life there, mostly on
H. E. V. 27). He shared in his master's suffer- or near the peak of La Cogolla (according to
ings under Valens, and accompanied by Fla- the tradition of the monastery ;there is no
vian, attended him at the council of Con- mention of the Cogolla of St. Braulio's life),
stantinople A.D. 381 (Labbe, ii. 955). We whence the after-name of the monastery which
next find him as bishop at a council at Con- —
commemorated him San Millan de la Co-
stantinople A.D. 394 (Labbe, ii. 1151), and golla. Didymus, bp. of Tarrazona (Turiasso),
again at Constantinople at the close of a.d. much against the saint's will, ordained him
403, as a member of the council summoned presbyter, and gave him the cure of Vergegium.
by Chrysostom's enemies, and issuing in his Here his entire unworldliness drew upon him
deposition. Elpidius had been an intimate the hatred of his brother clergy. He was
friend of Chrysostom at Antioch, and now accused before Didymus of wasting the goods
lent the weight of his age and well-deserved of the church, and deprived of his cure. Thus
reputation to the defence of his old associate. released from an unwelcome office, Emilianus
When the validity of the canons of the council passed the rest of his life at an oratory near
of Antioch, of suspected orthodoxy, used by Vergegium. During this second retirement,
Chrysostom's enemies as an instrument to although his personal asceticism increased
secure their object, came into question before rather than diminished, he allowed himself to
the emperor, Elpidius adroitly turned the be surrounded by a small circle of disciples,
tables on Acacius and his party by proposing and became widely famed for charity and
that the advocates of the canons should de- tenderness towards the poor. St. Braulio no-
clare themselves of the same faith with those where speaks of him as monachus, but only
who had promulgated them (Pallad. Dial. c. 9, as presbyter. Tamayo de Salazar, Martyr.
p. 80). After Chrysostom's deposition and Hisp. vi. 109 ; Esp. Sagrada, 1. 2 Mabillon,
;

exile, Elpidius exerted himself strenuously in saec. i. ; Yepes, Chron. Benedictin. i. ann.
his behalf, dispatching letters to bishops and 572 ; Sanchez, Poesias Cast. ant. al Siglo XV.
faithful laity in all parts of the world, exhort- vol. ii. [m.a.w.]
ing them to remain true to Chrysostom, and EncratiteS ("EyKparels, Irenaeus 'Yi-yKpaTri-
;

encouraging them to bear up against perse- Tai, Clem. Alex. 'EyKparlrai, Hippol.), heretics
;

cution. Chrysostom wrote to Elpidius shortly who abstained from flesh, wine, and the mar-
after his arrival at Cucusus in 404, thanking riage bed, believing them essentially impure.
him most warmly, and giving him information Persons who so abstained called themselves
concerning the place of his banishment, his continent (iyKpareii, Iren. i. 28, p. 107) and
;

companions, and his health (Chrvs. Ep. 114). the slightly modified form, Encratites, soon
Four other letters from Chrysostom to El- became a technical name to denote those
pidius are extant, all written from Cucusus whose asceticism was regarded as of a heretical
(Epp. 25, 138, A.D. 405 ; Ep. 131, A.D. 406; character (Clem. Alex. Paed. ii. 2, p. 182 ;
Ep. 142, A.D. 407). Strom, i. 15, p. 359, vii. 17, p. 900 Hippol.
;

Elpidius suffered for his fidelity to his friend Ref. viii. 20, p. 276). We
are not bound to
in the persecution against the Joannite party suppose that all who were known by the name
under Atticus and Porphyry. In 406 he was formed a single united sect. Irenaeus, e.g.
deposed from his see, and was closely im- (I.e.), says that some of the earliest of them
prisoned in his house for three years (Pallad. were followers of Saturninus and Marcion ;
Dial. p. 195). In 414 Alexander, succeeding and it is reasonable to understand by this, not
Porphyry as bp. of Antioch, restored Elpidius that they united in a single heretical body, but
to his see in a manner which testified deep that, independently using the same mode of life
reverence for his character, and pope Innocent and making the same boast of continence, they
heard of it with extreme satisfaction (Baron. were known to the orthodox by the same name.
408, §§ 35, 37 ;Tillem. xi. 274). [e.v.] The practice of such abstinence was older than
Emilianus (8) (Aemilianus, San Millan), Christianity. Not to speak of the Indian
sohtary claimed by the Spanish Benedictines ascetics (to
; whom Clement of Alexandria refers
294 ENCRATITES ENCRATITES
as predecessors of the Encratites), the ab- Severians from a certain Severus, who became
stinence of the Essenes, both in respect of food an Encratite leader shortly after Tatian. He
and of marriage, is notorious. Josephus's adds that these Severians received the O.T.
account of the Essenes is referred to by Por- and the Gospels, only putting their peculiar
phyry, who, like them, objected both to the interpretations on them, but reviled Paul,
use of animal food and to animal sacrifices. rejecting his epistles and also Acts. This
An interesting specimen of Pythagorean shews Ebionite features, and these Severians
doctrine on this subject is his work Trepi diroxv^ may have been of Ebionite origin, for great
tQv ifx\f/vxw, addressed to a friend who after diversity probably existed between the teach-
trial of abstinence had wickedly relapsed into ing of persons classed together as Encratites.
the use of flesh diet. He insists on the im- The Severians are described by Epiphanius
portance of keeping the soul, as far as possible, [Haer. 45) with all the features of an Ophite
free from the bonds of matter, to which sect but evidently from hearsay only, as
;

animal food tends to enslave it ;on the he speaks of the sect as having almost died
wisdom of avoiding everything over which out ; and Lipsius (Q.-K. des Epiph. 215) gives
evil demons have power, viz. all material good reason for thinking that he found no
things, and especially animal food and ;
article on them in previous heretical treatises.
on the injustice of depriving of life for our Epiphanius describes (Haer. 4?,) the Encratites
pleasure animals akin to ourselves, having as widely spread, enumerating seven different
reason, emotions, sentiments, completely like countries where they were then to be found.
ours. Evidently, therefore, there were in these
The account given by Hegesippus of James countries heretics leading an ascetic life',
the Just (Eus. H. E. ii. 23) shews that right- though it would be unsafe to assert an absolute
eousness of the Essene type was clearly held identity in their teaching. We may con-
in admiration in the Christian church and ;
clude Epiphanius mistaken in placing the
I. Tim. iv. 3-6 shews that teachers had already Encratites after the Tatianites, as if they
arisen who inculcated such abstinence as a were a branch of the latter sect, the true
duty. But it does not appear that they held relation being just the opposite. Some
the Gnostic doctrine, that matter is essentially additional information about the Encratites
evil, and its creation the work of a being in- is in the work of Macarius Magnes, pub. in
ferior or hostile to the Supreme for the
;
Paris, 1876. He wrote c. 400, and enumerates
apostle's argument assumes as common ground (iii. 43, p. 151) some countries where the
that the things they rejected were creatures Encratites (whom he also called Apotactites
of the good God. We find from the Clemen- and Eremites) were to be found. He was
tines that the Ebionite sects which arose out thus, probably, acquainted with the work of
of Essenism permitted marriage, but dis- Epiphanius. But he adds that a defence of
allowed flesh meat and wine and that their
;
their doctrines in eight books had been pub-
doctrine respecting God's work of creation lished by a leader of theirs, Dositheus, a Cili-
was quite orthodox. Hippolytus, too, who cian, in which he inveighed against marriage
takes his account of the Encratites from his and the tasting of wine or partaking of flesh
own acquaintance with them as a then existing meat. In his account of the Samaritan
sect, describesthem as orthodox in doctrine Dositheus, Epiphaniusintroducessome Encra-
concerning God and Christ, and differing from not attested by other authorities,
tite features
the church only in their manner of life. But and may have allowed his knowledge of the
the Gnostic teachers named by Irenaeus (I.e.) doctrine of the one Dositheus to affect his
undoubtedly based their asceticism on the account of the other. We cannot give much
doctrine of the evil of matter, denying it to weight to the account of Philaster, who (72)
be the work of God, and consequentiy deemed assigns the name and doctrine of the Encra-
it wrong, by generation, to bring new souls tites to the followers of Aerius and we may
;

under the dominion of death, and expose them wholly disregard the inventive " Praedestin-
to the miseries of this life. A full discussion atus " (who represents the Encratites as
of their arguments occurs in the third book refuted by an Epiphanius, bp. of Anc\Ta),
of Clement's Stromateis (though the name except to repeat his distinction between
Encratites does not occur here), the principal Encratite and Catholic abstainers viz. the —
writers whom he combats being Marcion, former asserted the food they rejected to be
Tatian, already mentioned by Irenaeus as a evil the latter owned it to be good, too
;

leader of that sect, and Julius Cassianus. good for them. Canons of St. Basil on En-
The Gospel according to the Egyptians con- cratite baptism (clxxxviii. can. i cxcix. can. ;

tained alleged sayings of our Lord, which they 47) have given rise to some dispute, but it
used in support of their doctrines. Epipha- seems clear that St. Basil wished to reject the
nius mentions that thev used other apocrvphal baptism of these Encratites, not because the
writings, such as the Acts of Andrew, John, orthodox formula of baptism was lacking, but
and Thomas. This controversy seems to have because, regarding them as tainted with
been actively carried on in the last quarter Marcionite error, he could not accept the
of the 2nd cent. Eusebius (//. E. iv. 28) verbal acknowledgment of the Father in the
relates that Musanus, a writer early in that baptismal formula as atonement for the insult
period, addressed a verv effective dissuasive offered to the Creator, Whose work they looked
argument to certain brethren who had turned on as evil. For a reference to these canons,
aside to that sect, then newly come into exist- as well as to the law of the Theodosian code
ence and Theodoret [Haer. Fab. i. 21) men- (a.d. 381) against the Manicheans, who
;

tions that another writer of the same date, sheltered themselves under the name of
ApoUinaris, wrote against the Severian En- Encratites, see Apostolici. Not many years
cratites. Eusebius (iv. 29) derives this name earlier the Encratites were an existing sect in
;

ENNODIUS MAGNUS FELIX EPHRAIM THE SYRIAN 295

Galatia ;for Sozomen (v. ii) records the " in extreme old age," a.d. 373, and there-
c.

sufiferings of Busiris, at that time one of them, fore was probably born c. a.d. 308.*
in the persecution under Julian. [g.s.] The story of his parents seeking to train
Ennodius (1) Magnus Felix, bp. of Pavia, him in idolatry is at variance with his own
born at Aries (Ennod. Ep. lib. vii. 8) c. 473 ;
statements. In his Confession (0pp. Gr. i.
connected with Romans of distinction (ib. iv. 129) he says, " When I sinned, I was already
25). The invasion of the Visigoths, and the a partaker of grace I had been early taught
:

consequent loss of his patrimony, caused him about Christ by parents mythey who had ;

to migrate at an early age to Milan, where he begotten me after the flesh had trained me ia
was educated in the house of an aunt. In the fear of the Lord. I had seen neigh- my
489, the year in which Theodoric invaded bours living piously I had heard of many
;

Italy, his aunt died, and he was saved from suffering for Christ. My
own parents were
beggary by marriage (Eucharist, de Vit.). A confessors before the Judge yea, I am the :

dangerous sickness {Ep. viii. 24) led him to kindred of martyrs." Or again, in his Syriac
serious thought and suggested the composition works (0pp. Syr. ii. 499) " I was born in the
:

of his Eucharisticon. in which he reviews with way of truth and though ; boyhood under- my
penitence his past life. He was subsequently stood not the greatness of the benefit, I knew
ordained deacon by Epiphanius bp. of Pavia, it when trial came."
whose exhortations determined him to re- In 337 Constantine the Great died, and Sa-
nounce his marriage, with the consent of his por, king of Persia, seized the opportunity of
wife, who retired into a convent. In 494 he invading Mesopotamia. He commenced the
accompanied Epiphanius (Ennod. Vit. Epi- siege of Nisibis in 338, and in 70 days had
phan. 234 a) on a mission to Gundebaud, king brought it to the verge of surrender. But
of the Burgundians, to procure the ransom of Ephrem induced the aged bishop James to
certain Ligurian prisoners. Upon the death mount the walls and pray for the Divine suc-
of Epiphanius two years later he visited Rome, cour. Shortly afterwards swarms of mos-
and gained reputation by composing an quitoes and horse-flies made the horses and
apology for pope Symmachus and the synod elephants unmanageable, and Sapor withdrew
which acquitted him, as well as by a public his forces lest he should bring upon himself
panegyric in honour of Theodoric. The heavier chastisement. Before the end of 338
former of these was inserted in the Acta Con- St. James died, when Ephrem probably left
ciliorum the latter is generally included in
; Nisibis, and after a short stay at Amid, to
collections of the Panegyrici Veteres. Under which city his mother is said to have belonged,
the next pope, Hormisdas, he succeeded Maxi- travelled towards Edessa, the chief seat both
mus II. in the see of Pavia, and was sent in of Christianity and of learning in Mesopotamia.
515, and again in 517, on an embassy to the Knowing no handicraft and having no
emperor Anastasius to oppose the spread of means of living, Ephrem there entered the
the Eutychian heresy. Both embassies were service of a bath-keeper, but devoted his spare
unsuccessful. Anastasius, failing to corrupt time to teaching and reasoning with the
or bend the bishop, had him placed on natives. While so engaged one day his words
board an unseaworthy vessel. Ennodius, were overheard by an aged monk who had
however, arrived safely in his diocese, which descended from his hermitage into the city,
he continued to administer for four years. and being rebuked by him for still mingling
He died at the age of 48, and was buried in with the world, Ephrem withdrew into a
the church of St. Michael at Pavia, July 17, cavern among the mountains, adopted the
521. monastic dress, and commenced a life of ex-
His writings exemplify throughout a pro- treme asceticism, giving himself up to study
fane tendency of thought and expression and to writing. His works were widely
which Christian writers in Gaul were slow to diffused, and disciples gathered round him, of
abandon. Many of his letters suit the pen of whom many rose to eminence as teachers, and
a heathen rhetorician rather than of a Chris- several of whom he commemorates in his
tian bishop. His illustrations are commonly Testament. The growing fame of Basil,
drawn from Greek mythology. He speaks of bp. of Caesarea in Cappadocia, inspired
divine grace as descending " de Superis," and Ephrem with a strong desire to visit one who
sets the Fates side by side with Jesus Christ. had been shewn him in a dream as a column
His style is turgid, involved, and affected. He of fire reaching from earth to heaven.
seems to shrink from making himself intel- His journey to Caesarea is vouched for by
ligible lest he should be thought commonplace, Basil's brother Gregory, and by Ephrem him-
and the result is unattractive. His works self in his Encomium on Basil, t Accompanied
are reprinted with notes in Migne's Patr. by an interpreter, he arrived on the eve of the
vol. Ixiii. For his Life see Sirmond's ed. Epiphany, and spent the night in the streets.
Ceillier, Anteurs sacr. et eccles. x. 569 for a ; The next morning they took their place in an
just estimate of his literary merits, Ampere, obscure corner of the church, and Ephrem
Hist. lit. de la France, [e.m.y.]
t. ii. c. vii. groaned in spirit as he saw Basil seated in a
Ephraim (4) the Syrian, usually called magnificent pulpit, arrayed in shining gar-
Ephrem Syrus, from the Syriac form of his ments, with a mitre sparkling with jewels on
name Aphrem, was born in Mesopotamia, for his head, and surrounded by a multitude of
he describes his home as lying between the clergy adorned with almost equal splendour.
Tigris and the Euphrates (0pp. Svr. i. 23), " Alas " he said to his interpreter, " 1 fear
!

probably at Nisibis. As Edessa became the


chief scene of his labours, he is generally
* St. Jerome's expression mu.st not be forced too
much.
styled the Edessene. It is comparatively On the authenticity of this piece, which exists
t
certain that he died, as stated by St. Jerome, only in Greek, see Proleg. to Ephr. 0pp. Gr. II. Ii.
296 EPHRAIM THE SYRIAN EPHRAIM THE SYRIAN
our labour is in vain. For if we, who have was in motion ; for the waters were instinct,
given up the world, have advanced so little he argues, with no creative energy till the
in holiness, what spiritual gifts can we expect fourth day. From Caesarea, Ephrem
to find in one surrounded by so great pomp was recalled to Edessa by the news that the
and glory ? " But when Basil began to city was assailed by numerous heresies. On
preach, it seemed to Ephrem as though the his journey he rescued the people of Samosata
Holy Ghost, in shape like a dove, sat upon his from the influence of false teaching by a
shoulder, and suggested to him the words. miracle, and on reaching home sought to
From time to time the people murmured their counteract heresy by teaching orthodoxy in
applause, and Ephrem twice repeated sent- hymns. The fatalistic tenets of Bardesan, a
ences which had fallen from the preacher's Gnostic who flourished at the end of the 2nd
lips. Upon this Basil sent his archdeacon to cent., had been embodied in 150 psalms, a
invite him into his presence, which, offended number fixed upon in irreverent imitation of
at the saint's ragged attire, he did reluctantly, the Psalter of David. His son Honorius had
and only after he had been twice bidden to set these hymns to music, and so sweet were
summon him. After embracing one another, both the words and tunes that they were
with many florid compliments, Basil asked known by heart even by children and sung
him how it was that, knowing no Greek, he to the guitar. To combat their influence
had twice cheered the sermon, and repeated Ephrem composed numerous hymns himself,
sentences of it to the multitude ? And and trained young women, who were aspir-
Ephrem answered, " It was not I who praised ants after the conventual life, to sing them
and repeated, but the Holy Ghost by my in chorus. These hymns have no rhyme, nor.
mouth." Under pressure from St. Basil, do they scan, but are simply arranged in
Ephrem consented to be ordained deacon. parallel lines, containing each, as a rule, seven
When Basil had laid his hands upon him, syllables. Their poetry consists in their ele-
being suddenly endowed with the knowledge vated sentiments and richness of metaphor,
of Syriac, he said to Ephrem in that tongue, but their regular form was an aid to the
" O Lord, bid him arise," upon which Ephrem memory, and rendered them capable of being
answered in Greek, " Save me, and raise me set to music. The subjects of these hymns
up, O God, by Thy grace." Doubtless were the Life of our Lord, including His
Ephrem, travelling about with an educated Nativity, Baptism, Fasting, and chief incidents
companion, and having been an eminent of his ministry. His Passion, Resurrection,
teacher at Edessa, a place famous for its and Ascension. He wrote also on Repent-
schools, had picked up some knowledge of ance, on the Dead, and on Martyrs. Upon
Greek and Hebrew, some evidence of which the Festivals of our Lord, we read, on the first
we shall later gather from his own writings. days of the week, and on the days of martyrs,
Two instances are given in the Acta of the Ephrem gathered round him his choirs, and
influence of Ephrem's teaching on St. Basil. the whole city flocked to hear them, and the
It had been usual at Caesarea in the Doxology poems of Bardesan lost their influence. While
to say. Glory be to the Father, and to the Son, thus occupied Basil endeavoured to persuade
to the Holy Ghost ; but after Ephrem's visit him to visit Caesarea again, intending to make
Basil inserted and before the third clause. him a bishop, but the saint even feigned
Whereat the people in church murmured, and madness rather than consent. Meanwhile he
Basil defended himself by saying that his wrote upon the devastation committed by the
SyTian visitor had taught him that the inser- Persians, the Maccabean martyrs, the Life of
tion of the conjunction was necessary' for the Constantine, and so on, until the accession of
more clear manifestation of the doctrine of Julian rudely disturbed his studies. On his
the Holy Trinity. The other instance is as expedition against the Persians Julian had
follows : In Gen. i. 2 the LXX renders advanced as far as Haran, a town so famous
" The Spirit of God was borne upon the surface for obstinate adherence to heathenism that
of the water." So St. Basil had understood Haranite in Syriac is equivalent to pagan, and
it, but the Peshitta-Syriac version renders it, there determined to hold a great sacrifice, to
" The Spirit of God brooded upon the face of which he commanded the Edessenes to send
the waters," which Ephrem explained of the chosen citizens to do him homage, and to
Spirit resting upon them with a warm and grace by their presence his restoration of the
fostering influence as of a hen sitting upon her old cult. But this met with such fierce
nest, and so endowing them with the power opposition on the part of the people, and such
of bringing forth the moving creature that an eager desire for martyrdom, that the
hath life. St. Basil gives two reasons for embassy withdrew in haste, and Julian
trusting his Sjnrian friend. First, that threatened Edessa with bitter vengeance upon
Ephrem led a very ascetic life " for in pro- his return. Ephrem, who had exerted him-
;

portion as a man abandons the love of the self to the utmost in this crisis, resumed his
world, so does he excel in that perfection hermit life, quitting the mountains only for
which rises above the world." Secondly, that controversy with heretics or for charitable
" Ephrem is an acute thinker, and has a services. As a controversialist, Gregory of
thorough knowledge of the divine philosophy," Nyssa relates of him with great approbation
i.e. of the general sense of Holy Scripture. an act contrary to modern views of morality :

There is nothing to suggest that any appeal The " insane and irrational Apollinaris " had
was made to the Hebrew, as Benedict sug- written a treatise in two volumes containing
gests, though, in fact, the Syriac and Hebrew much that was contrary to Scripture. These
words are the same ; and, curiously enough, he had given in charge of a lady at Edessa,
in his own exposition {0pp. Syr. i. 8), Ephrem from whom Ephrem borrowed them, pretend-
says that the words simply mean that a wind ing that he was a disciple of Apollinaris and

EPHRAIM THE SYRIAN EPHRAIM THE SYRIAN 297

was preparing to defend his views. Before from it. A collection of Armenian trans-
returning them he glued the leaves together, lations of Ephrem's works, pub. in 4 vols.
and then challenged the heretic to a public 8vo by the Mechitarists at Venice in 1836,
disputation. Apollinaris accepted the chal- includes one (in vol. iii.) of his commentary
lenge so far as to consent to read from these on St. Paul's epistles.
books what he had written, declining more Following upon the commentary are 12
on account of his great age but he foimd the metrical expositions of portions of Scripture,
;

leaves so firmly fastened together that he such as the creation of man in God's image,
could not open them, and withdrew, deeply the temptation of Eve, the translation of
mortified by his opponent's unworthy victory. Enoch, etc., occupying pp. 316-319. Some
Far more creditable is the last act recorded of these, especially that upon the mission of
of Ephrem. While withdrawn in his rocky Jonah and the repentance of the Ninevites,
cavern he heard that Edessa had been visited have been translated into English by the Rev.
by a severe famine. He came down to the H. Burgess (Lond. 1856), the author also
city, and induced the richer citizens to of Select Metrical Hymns and Homilies of
bring out their secret stores of food, on con- Ephraem Syrus (two vols. Lond. 1853). These
dition, however, that Ephrem should himself expositions are followed b}' 13 metrical homi-
take charge of them. He managed them with liesupon the Nativity, pp. 396-436. Next
such skill, prudence, and honesty that they come 56 homilies against false doctrines (pp.
sufficed for the Edessenes and for numerous 437-560) ; chiefly against Bardesan, Marcion,
strangers also. The next year was one of and Manes.
great plenty, and Ephrem resumed his solitary In vol. iii., after the Acta S. Ephraemt
lifeamidst the prayers and gratitude of all (i.-lxiii.), the first place is held by 87 homilies
classes. on the Faith, in answer to freethinkers. The
His death followed shortly afterwards, fully last seven of these are called sermons upon the
foreseen by himself, as his Testament proves. Pearl, which Ephrem takes as an emblem of
In this hymn, written in heptasyllabic metre, the Christian faith, working out the idea with
after playing upon his own name and pro- great beauty, though with that diffuseness
fessing his faith, he commands his disciples not which is the common fault of his writings.
to bury him beneath the altar, nor in a church, Three very long controversial homilies (pp.
nor amongst the martyrs, but in the common 164-208) follow, repeating many of the same
burying-ground of strangers, in his gown and thoughts.
cowl, with no spices nor waxlights, but with A sermon against the Jews, preached on
their prayers. It ends with an account of Palm Sunday (pp. 209-224), has been trans-
Lamprotata, daughter of the prefect of lated by the Rev. J. B. Morris into English.*
Edessa, who earnestly sought permission to Then follow 85 hymns (pp. 225-359) to be
be buried in due time at Ephrem's feet. used at the burial of bishops, presbyters,
The works of Ephrem were most volumin- deacons, monks, princes, rich men, strangers,
ous. Sozomen {Eccl. Hist. iii. i6) says that matrons, women, youths, children, in time of
he wrote three million lines, but a large pro- plague, and for general use. These are trans,
portion has perished. What remains is said into Eng. in Burgess's Select Metrical Hymns.
by Bellarmine to be " pious rather than Next come four short homilies on Free-will
learned." The great edition of his works is (PP- 359-366), partly following the order of the
that in six vols. fol.,pub. at Rome in 1732-1743, Syriac alphabet then 76 homilies on Repent-
;

under the editorship of the Maronite Peter ance (pp. 367-561). Next, 12 sermons on the
Mobarek, better known by the Latin transla- Paradise of Eden (pp. 562-598) and finally, ;

tion of his surname Benedict, and completed 18 sermons on miscellaneous subjects (pp.
after his death by J. S. E. Asseman, titular 599-687). Considerable activity has been
bp. of Apamaea, who is answerable, however, displayed in editing other Syriac works of
for the translation of only vol. vi. pp. 425-687. Ephrem e.g. by Dr. J. J. Overbeck, in S.
The first three vols, consist of sermons and Ephraemi Syri, Rabulae, Balaei, aliorumque
discourses in Greek with a Latin translation. Opera Selecta (Oxf., Clarendon Press, 1865).
Many of these are probably genuine, for Sozo- Almost more important is " S. Ephraemi Syri
men says that already in his lifetime works of Carmina Nisibena, ed. by Dr. G. Bickell,
Ephrem were translated into Greek, and as Lipsiae, 1866." Of these hymns, the first
both Chrysostom and Jerome were acquainted 21 treat of the long struggle between Sapor
with them, and Gregory of Nyssa quotes his and the Romans for the possession of Nisibis,
Testament, it is certain that several of his from its siege in 350 to just before its miserable
writings were very soon thus made available surrender by Jovian in 363. The next 5
for general use. But some pieces must be re- hymns have perished in Nos. 26-30 the scene
;

ceived with caution, and one {0pp. Gr. ii. 356 is Edessa, and the subject the schism there in
seq.) is almost certainly not genuine. the bishopric of Barses, a.d. 361-370. Bickell
The other three vols, contain his Syriac thinks these were written c. 370, towards the
\vorks, the most important being his Exposi- close of Ephrem's life. Hymns 31-34 treat of
tion of O.T. Of the commentary upon the Haran and the many troubles its bishop, Vitus,
Gospels few traces remain, but Dionvsius endured from the pagans there. The other
Barsalibi, bp. of Amid, savs that Ephrem' had hymns (35-77) treat of the Overthrow of Death
followed the order of the Diatessaron of and Satan by our Lord, of the Resurrection of
Tatian. As copies of Dionvsius's own com- the Body in refutation of Bardesan and Manes,
mentary exist in the British Museum, the
Bodleian Library, and elsewhere, some por- Morris (Select Works of Ephr. Syrus, Oxf. 1847)
translated 13 rhythms on the Nativity, this against
tions of Ephrem's work, as well as some idea
the Jews, the 80 rhythms on the Faith, 7 on the
of Tatian's arrangement, might be obtained Pearl, and
3 long controversial homilies.
;-

298 EPHRAIM THE SYRIAN EPHRAIM THE SYRIAN


of Dialogues between
Death, Satan, and marked absence of acquaintance with the
Man, and of Hymns upon the Resurrection, language in his commentary as a whole.
not of a controversial but of a consolatory Of Greek he also shews but a very moderate
character. From the directions for singing knowledge, though a more real acquaintance
given with each hymn, and the existence in with it than with Hebrew. His own words
most of them of a response or refrain noted in Opp. .Syr. ii. 317 are to the point: " Not
in the MS. in red, the collection was evidently from the rivulet of my own thought have I
for liturgical use. opened these things for thy drinking, for I am
Bertheau edited a Syriac homily of St. poor and destitute alike of meat and drink
Ephrem from a MS. at Rome (Gottingen, 1837), but, like a bottle from the sea or drops from
and another from the Museum Borghianum was a caldron, I have begged these things from
pub. by Zingerle and Mosinger in Monumenta just men, who were lords of the fountain."
Syriaca (Innsbruck, 1869), vol. i. pp. 4-12 An example will shew him much more at
;

in vol. ii. (pub. 1878) numerous fragments from home in Greek than in Hebrew. In I. Kings
MSS. at Rome are found, pp. 33-51. In most xiv. 3 lOpp. Syr. i. 480) the Syriac version has,
Chrestomathies specimens of Ephrem's writ- instead of cracknels, a rare word signifying
ings are given, and that by Hahn and Sieffert srveetmeats. Ephrem notices that the Greek
consists entirely of them. has grapes, and gives this as an explanation of
As a commentator Ephrem holds a middle the Syriac but makes no reference to the
;

place between the literal interpretation of Hebrew word, which certainly signifies some
Theodore of Mopsuestia and the allegorical kind of cakes, such as might rightly be called
method of Origen. As Basil and Gregory sweetmeats, but certainly is no kind of fruit.
were both strongly influenced by Origen, From his intense devotion and piety, his
Ephrem's independence is the more remark- hymns were largely adopted into the services
able. In commenting on Is. xxv. 7 (vol. ii. of the church, and prayers also composed by
61), he gives a statement of his method as him are found in most Oriental liturgies. His
follows " Though the prophet is speaking personal character deserves high praise. He
:

of Sennacherib he has a covert reference to was an extreme ascetic, passing his whole life
Satan. For the spiritual sense is usually the in poverty, raggedness, humility, and gentle-
same as the ecclesiastical. The words there- ness. His gentleness has been denied on
fore of the prophets concerning those things account of the fierce language sometimes used
which have happened or were about to happen in controversial writings. We may, however,
to the Jews are mystically to be referred to take his words in his Testament as literally
the future propagation of the church, and the true {Opp. Gr. ii. 396) " Throughout my
:

providence of God and His judgments upon whole life, neither by night nor day, have I
the just and upon evil-doers." Benedict, reviled any one, nor striven with any one ;

followed by Lengerke, instead of ecclesiastical but in their assemblies I have disputed with
translates historical what Ephrem really those who deny the faith. For if a wolf is
;

says is that there is first the literal interpre- entering the fold, and the dog goes not out
tation, and secondly a spiritual one, which and barks, the master beats the dog. But a
generally refers to the church. wise man hates no one, or if he hates at all,
The question has often been asked whether he hates only a fool."
he really possessed any competent acquaint- "His words reach the heart, for they treat
ance with Hebrew and Greek. He had not powerfully of human joys and cares they ;

had a learned education, but nevertheless depict the struggles and storms of life, and
displays considerable knowledge, including sometimes its calm rest. He knows how to
some of physical science, and in his discourses awaken terror and alarm, as he sets forth be-
on fate, freewill, etc., he manifests, without fore the sinner his punishment, God's right-
parade, a sufficient mastery of Greek philo- eous judgment, his destined condemnation ;

sophy to refute the Gnostic errors prevalent he knows, too, how to build up and comfort,
in the East. We need not be surprised, where he proclaims the hopes of the faithful
therefore, that Sozomen says (H. E. iii. 16) and the bliss of eternal happiness. His words
that Basil wondered at his learning. ring in mild, soft tones when he paints the
The chief places which suggest some know- happy rest of the pious, the peace of soul
ledge of Hebrew are as follow. Commenting enjoyed by those who cleave to the Christian
on the creation of whales in Gen. i. 21 (Opp. faith they thunder and rage like a storm
;

Syr. i. 18), he says that they and leviathan wind when he scourges heretics, or chastises
inhabit the waters, behemoth the land pride and folly.
;
Ephraim was an orator
quoting not only Job xl. 15, but Ps. 1. 10, possessed of spirit and taste, and his poetical
which he translates, " And behemoth upon a gifts were exactly those calculated to give
thousand hills." Ephrem's rendering is weight and influence to his aiithority as a
perfectly possible, and must have been ob- teacher among his countrymen" (Roediger).
tained from some Jewish source. As such they venerated him, giving him
On I. Sam. iii. li he rightly says that both especially the title of Malphono, the teacher;
the Syr. and Heb. names for cymbal resemble but one of his greatest services to the church
the verb so translated. In I. Sam. xxi. 7 was the marvellous variety and richness which
he correctly explains the word " detained " by he gave to its public worship. Ephraim's
noting that the Heb. word neasar signifies quotations from the Gospels have been col-
pressed or hidden away. In II. Kings iii. 4 lected by F. C. Burkitt (Texts and Studies, vol.
he rightlv says that the Syr. nokdo is really vii. No. 2, Camb. Univ. Press). His Com-
a Heb. word, and means " head shepherd." mentarv on the Diatessaron was trans,
These points might have been picked up into Latin by J. B. Aucher, and pub. in this
from conversation with others, and there is a form by G. Mosinger (Venice, 1876). See
EPHRAIM EPIPHANES 299

also J. H. Hill, A Dissertation on the Gospel a native of Cephallenia. He died at the age
Commentary of S. Ephraim (Edinburgh, 1896). of 17, and at Same, a city of Cephallenia,
The Fragments of S. Ephraim have been ed. a handsome temple and other buildings
by J. R. Harris for the (Camb. Univ. were raised in his memory ; and at the new
Press). [r.p.s.] moon the Cephallenians were wont to cele-
Ephraim (6) (Ephrem, Ephraemius, or, as brate his apotheosis as a god by sacrifices,
Theophanes gives the name, Euphraimius), hbations, banquets, and the singing of hymns.
bp. of Antioch and patriarch, a.d. 527-545. He had been instructed by his father in the
The title, 6 'A/midios, given him by Theophanes, ordinary circle of arts and sciences, and in the
indicates that he was a native of Amida in Platonic philosophy. He was the founder of
Armenia. He devoted the early part of his the " Monadic Gnosis," and from him flowed
life to civil employments, and became Count the heresy of those afterwards known as Car-
of the East in the reign of Justin I. The city pocratians. He was the author of a work on
of Antioch having been nearly destroyed in Justice, which he made to consist in equality.
A.D. 525 and 526 by earthquake and conflag- He taught that, God having given His benefits
ration, Ephraim was sent by Justin as com- to all alike and in common, human laws are
missioner to relieve the sufferers and restore censurable which instituted the distinction of
the city. The high qualities manifested in meum and tiium, and which secure to one as
the fulfilment of these duties gained the his peculiar possession that to which all have
affection and respect of the people of Antioch, an equal right. This communistic doctrine
who unanimously chose him bishop on the he extended to the sexual relations. What-
death of Euphrasius (Evagr. H. E. iv. 5, 6). ever may have been the origin of the phrase
His consecration is placed in a.d. 357. As " Monadic Gnosis," the doctrine here described
bishop he exhibited an unwavering firmness seems the direct opposite of Dualism. In-
against the heretical tendencies of his day. stead of accounting for the existence of evil
Theophanes says that he shewed " a divine as the work of a hostile principle, this theory
zeal against schismatics" {Chronogr. p. 118). would represent moral evil as a mere fiction
Moschus tells a story of his encounter near of human laws, perversely instituted in op-
Hierapolis with one of the pillar ascetics, position to the will of the Creator.
a follower of Severus and the Acephali {Prat. There is a passage in Irenaeu= (I. xi. 3, p. 54)
Spiritual, c. 36). Ephraim examined synod- which, it has been contended, gives us another
ically the tenets of Syncleticus, metropolitan specimen of the teaching of Epiphanes. In
of Tarsus, who was suspected of Eutychian giving an account of the doctrines of some
leanings but was acquitted (Phot. Cod. 228). followers of Valentinus, after stating the
In 537, at the bidding of Justinian, he repaired theory of Secundus, he goes on to mention the
with Hypatius of Ephesus and Peter of Jeru- description which another " illustrious teacher
salem to Gaza to hold a council in the matter of theirs " (clarus magister) gives of the origin
of Paul the patriarch of Alexandria, who had of the primary Tetrad. In this the first prin-
been banished to that city and there deposed. ciple is stated to be one existing before all
In obedience to the emperor Justinian, things, surpassing all thought and speech,
Ephraim held a synod at Antioch, which re- which the author calls Oneliness {/jiovdTrjs).
pudiated the doctrines of Origen as heretical With this Monotes co-existed a power which
(Liberat. c. 23, apud Labbe, Concil. v. yyy he This Monotes and
calls Unity {ivdTrjs).
seq. ; Baronius, Annal. 537, 538). He was Henotes constituting absolute unity (to iv
the author of a large number of theological
oii(Tai) emitted (though not in any proper
treatises directed against Nestorius, Eutyches,
that word) a principle the object of
Severus, and the Acephali, and in defeiice of sense of
the decrees of Chalcedon. thought only, which reason calls Monad. And
In 546, yielding to
with this Monad co-existed a power consubstan-
severe pressure, he subscribed the edict Jus-
tinian had put forth condemning " the three tial with it, which the
author calls Unit (t6 h).
chapters " (Facund. Pro Defens. Trium Capit. From this Tetrad came all the rest of the
iv. 4). He did not survive the disgrace of this Aeons. Pearson conjectured (see Dodwell,
concession, and died in 547. Dissert, in Iren. iv. §§ 25) that the " clarus
" of the old Latin translation repre-
His copious theological works have almost magister
entirely perished, and we have little know- sented €in(pavr]i SiSdffKoKos, and that this
ledge of them save through Photius [Biblioth. Epiphanes was a proper name, or at least that
Cod. 228, 229), who speaks of having read there was a play upon words referring to that
three of the volumes, but gives particulars of name. The doctrine of the extract, then,
two only. Some few fragments of his defence which seems an attempt to reconcile the theory
of the council of Chalcedon, and of the third of a Tetrad with strong belief in the unity of
book against Severus, and other works, are the First Principle, might well be a part of the
given by Mai (Bibl. Nov. iv. 63, vii. 204) and Monadic Gnosis, of which Epiphanes was said
are printed by Migne (Pair. Gk. Ixxxvi. par. 2, to be the author. Pearson's restoration of
pp. 2099 seq.). Theophanes, Chronogr. ad the Greek has since been pretty nearly verified
ann. 519, p. 118 d Moschus, Prat. Spiritual. by the recovery of the passage as reproduced
;

CC; 36, 37; Cave, Hist. Lit. i.


507; Fabric. by Hippolytus {Ref. vi. 38), where it runs
Bibl. Graec. lib. v. c. 38 ; Le Quien, Oriens AXXos 5i Tis firifpavris SiddcTKaXos avrQv.
Christ, ii. 733). [e.v.] Here the word in question is plainly an ad-
Epiphanes, a Gnostic writer about the jective, and Tertullian so understood it, who
middle of the 2nd cent., or earlier. Clement translates (adv. Valent. 37) " insignioris apud
of Alexandria {Strom, iii. p.
511) gives the eos magistri." On the other hand, Epiphanius
following account of him. He was the son of understood the passage of Epiphanes. On
Carpocrates, by a mother named Alexandria, examining what he tells of that heretic (Haer.
"

300 EPIPHANIUS EPIPHANIUS


32), it is plain that Epiphanius has been follow- and the Arians, semi-Arians, Macedonians,
ing Irenaeus until, on coming to the words Apollinarians, Origenists, of his own time.
^TTKpavri^ SiSduKaXos:, he goes off to Clement of About 376 he was taking an active part in the
Alexandria, and puts in what he there found Apollinarian controversies. Vitalis, a pres-
about Epiphanes. But Neander has made it byter of Antioch, had been consecrated bishop
almost certain that the person to whom Iren- by Apollinaris himself whereupon Epipha-
;

aeus really refers is Marcus (17). He points nius undertook a journey to Antioch to recall
out that these four names for the members of Vitalis from his error and reconcile him to
the primary Tetrad, Monotes, Henotes, Monas, the orthodox bp. Paulinus. His efforts, how-
and Hen, which the " illustrious teacher ever, proved unsuccessful. Though not him-
(c. 11) speaks of as names of his own giving, self present at the oecumenical council of
occur again with a KaO' & wposiprfTai in a pas- Constantinople, 381, which ensured the
sage cited from Marcus by name (Iren. i. 15, triumph of the Nicene doctrine in the Oriental
P- 74)- [G.S.] churches, his shorter confession of faith, which
Epiphanius (1), bp. of Salamis in Cyprus, is found at the end of his Ancoratus (c. 120)
zealous champion of orthodox faith and and seems to have been the baptismal creed of
monastic piety, was born at Besanduke, a the church of Salamis, agrees almost word for
village near Eleutheropolis in Palestine. As word with the Constantinopolitan formula.
in 392, twelve years before his death, he was He took no part in the synod held at Con-
an aged man, we may conjecturally date his stantinople in 382 but towards the end of
;

birth between 310 and 320. Much of his early that year we find him associated with St.
lifetime was spent with the monks of Egypt, Jerome, Paulinus of Antioch, and the three"
among whom he not only acquired a burning legates of that synod, at a council held under
zeal for ecclesiastical orthodoxy and the forms bp. Damasus at Rome, which appears to have
of ascetic life then coming into favour, but dealt with the Meletian and Apollinarian con-
also first came in contact with various kinds troversies. At Rome he was domiciled in the
of heretics. When twenty years old he re- house of the elder Paula, who, under the
turned home and built a monastery near spiritual guidance of St. Jerome, had dedicated
Besanduke, of which he undertook the direc- her ample fortune to the poor and sick, and
tion. He was ordained presbyter by Euty- Epiphanius seems to have strengthened her
chius, then bp. of Eleutheropohs. With St. in a resolution to forsake home and children
Hilarion, the founder of Palestinian mon- for an ascetic life at a great distance from
asticism, Epiphanius early stood in intimate Rome. Early in 383, when the bishops were
relation, and at a time when the great majority returning to their sees, Paula went on pilgrim-
of Oriental bishops favoured Arian or semi- age to the Holy Land. She stayed with
Arian views, he adhered with unshaken Epiphanius in Salamis about 10 days. Some-
fidelity to the Nicene faith, and its persecuted what later St. Jerome
also visited Epiphanius,
champions, Eusebius of Vercelli and Paulinus on his way to Bethlehem, bringing a train of
of Antioch, whom Constantius had banished monks to C^qDrus, to salute " the father of
from their sees. In 367 he was elected bp. of almost the whole episcopate, the last relic
Constantia, the ancient Salamis, in Cyprus, of ancient piety." Thenceforward we find
where for 36 years he discharged the episcopal Epiphanius in almost unbroken intercourse
ofiice with the zeal he had shewn in his monas- with Jerome, in alliance with whom he began
tery. The whole island was soon covered with his Origenistic controversies. He had indeed
monastic institutions. With the monks of already, in his Ancoratus (c. 54) and still more
Palestine, and especially of his own monastery in his Panarion, attacked Origen as the
at Eleutheropolis, he continued as bishop to ancestor of the Arian heresy.
hold uninterrupted communication. People On hearing that Origenism had appeared in
consulted him on every important question. Palestine, he hastened thither, in old age (a.d.
Some years after his elevation to the episco- 394), to crush it. His appearance sufficed to
pate, he addressed a letter to the faithful in drive the ci-devant Origenist Jerome into the
Arabia, in defence of the perpetual virginity bitterest enmity with his former friends, who
of Mary, afterwards incorporated in his great refused to repudiate their old attachment.
work. Against all Heresies (Haer. Ixxviii.). Epiphanius, received with all honours by the
Soon after, several presbyters of Suedra in bp. of Jerusalem, preached in the most violent
Pamphylia invoked his assistance in their manner in the church of the Resurrection.
controversy with Arians and Macedonians. Bp. John, after expressing his disapproval by
Similar applications came from other quarters; gestures only for a time, sent his archdeacon
e.g. by an Egyptian Christian named Hypa- to beg him to abstain from speaking further
tius, and by a presbyter, Conops, apparently on these topics. The sermon being over,
a Pisidian, who, with his co-presbyters, sought Epiphanius, as he walked by the side of John
instruction in a long series of disputed doc- to the church of the Holy Cross, was pressed
trines. This was the origin of his XyKvpiarb^ upon by the people, as Jerome tells us, from all
(Ancoratus) in 374, an exposition of the faith, sides with tokens of veneration. Bp. John,
which, anchor-like, might fix the mind when irritated by the sermon, evidently preached
tossed by the waves of heresy. A similar against himself, took the next opportunity to
occasion produced his great heresiologicalwork, preach against certain simple and uneducated
written in the years 374-377, the so-called persons who represented God to themselves
Havapi-ov, on which his fame chiefly rests. He in human form and corporeity. Whereupon
wrote this at the request of Acacius and Epiphanius rose, and expressing his full con-
Paulus, two presbyters and heads of monas- currence with this, declared that it was quite
teries in Coele-Syria, and in it attacks the as necessary to repudiate the heresies of
Gnostic sects of the and and 3rd cents., Origen as of the Anthropomorphists. He then
EPIPHANIUS EPIPHANIUS 301

hastened to join Jerome at Bethlehem, and opposed by the "


Long Brothers " from
required the monks there to renounce at once Egypt [Chrysostom], made strenuous efforts
all chiurch fellowship with the bp. of Jeru- to gain the assistance of Epiphanius against
salem but they entreated him to return to
; the action of those Origenistic monks, calling
John. Epiphanius went back to Jerusalem upon him to pass judgment upon Origen and
the same evening, but immediately regretting his heresy by means of a Cypriote synod.
the step, and without so much as speaking to Epiphanius assembled a synod, prohibited the
the bishop, left Jerusalem again at midnight works of Origen, and called on Chrysostom to
for his old monastery of Eleutherop olis. From do the same. He was then moved by Theo-
there he continued to press the monks of philus to appear personally, as an ancient
Bethlehem to renounce church fellowship with combatant of heresy, at Constantinople. In
the Origenist bp. John, and finally availed the winter of 402 Epiphanius set sail, con-
himself of the occasion provided by a depu- vinced that only his appearance was required
tation from Bethlehem, to ordain as presbyter to destroy the last remains of the Origenistic
Jerome's brother Paulinianus, and impose poison. Accompanied by several of his clergy,
him on the community, as one who should he landed near Constantinople. Chrysostom
administer the sacraments among them. This sent his clergy to give him honourable recep-
intrusion into the rights of another bishop tion at the gates of the city, with a friendly
Epiphanius endeavoured subsequently to invitation to take up his abode in the episcopal
excuse in a letter to John. His excuses were residence. This was rudely refused by the
far from satisfying the bishop, who reported passionate old man, who declared himself
to other bishops this violation of the canons, unable to hold church communion with Chry-
and threatened the monks of Bethlehem with sostom until he had expelled the " Long
ecclesiastical penalties so long as they should Brothers," and had subscribed a condemna-
recognize Paulinianus or persist in separation. tion of the writings of Origen. This Chrysos-
Epiphanius and Jerome, continuing to insist tom gently declined, with a reference to the
on J ohn publicly purging himself of Origenistic synod about to be holden whereupon
;

heresy, proceeded to invoke the mediation of Epiphanius at once assembled the many
Theophilus bp. of Alexandria. Theophilus's bishops already gathered at Constantinople,
legate, a presbyter named Isidore, openly sided and required them all to subscribe the decrees
with John, and Theophilus himself, who at of his own provincial council against the
that time was reckoned an Origenist, desig- writings of Origen. Some consented willingly,
nated Epiphanius, in a letter to the bp. of others refused. Whereupon the opponents of
Rome, a heretic and schismatic. Chrysostom urged Epiphanius to come forward
According to another account, Theophilus at the service in the church of the Apostles,
accused him, as well as John, of Anthropo- and openly preach against the Origenists
morphism. Epiphanius certainly received in and their protector Chrysostom. Chrysostom
this controversy little or no support from other warned Epiphanius to abstain, and the latter
bishops. He returned to his diocese, followed may by this time have begun to suspect that
by Paulinianus. In this way the chief source he was but a tool in the hands of others. On
of dispute between John and the monks of his way to the church he turned back, and soon
Jerusalem was removed, and Jerome pro- after, at a meeting with the " Long Brothers,"
visionally renewed communion with the bp. confessed that he had passed judgment upon
of Jerusalem, as well as with his old friend them on hearsay only, and, growing weary of the
Rufinus. A
few years after the close of this miserable business, determined to return home,
firstOrigenist controversy, Epiphanius found but died on board ship in the spring of 403.
himself involved in much more unpleasant His story shews him as an honest, but credu-
transactions. Among the monks of Egypt lous and narrow-minded, zealot for church
the controversy between Anthropomorphists orthodoxy. His frequent journeys andextensive
and Origenists continued to rage. Theophilus reading enabled him to collect a large store of
of Alexandria having in 398 directed a paschal historical information, and this he used with
epistle against the Anthropomorphists, a wild much ingenuity in defending the church
army of monks from the wilderness of Scete orthodoxy of his time. But he exercised
rushed into Alexandria, and so frightened really very small influence on dogmatic theo-
the bishop that he thought his life depended logy, and his theological polemics were more
on immediate concession. From that time distinguished by pious zeal than by penetrat-
Theophilus appears as a strong opponent of ing intelligence. His refutation of the doc-
Origenism. In his paschal epistle of 399 he trine of Origen is astoundingly superficial, a
opposes the heresies of Origen in the most few meagre utterances detached from their
violent manner. [Theophilus (9).] context being all he gives us, and yet he
Great joy was expressed by Epiphanius. boasted of having read 6,000 of Origen's works,
Know, my beloved son," he writes to Jer- a much larger number, as Rufinus remarks,
ome, " that Amalek is destroyed to the very than Origen had written.
root on the hill of Rephidim has been erected
; Those of his time regarded Epiphanius as
the banner of the cross. God has strength- a saint wherever he appeared, he was sur-
;

ened the hands of His servant Theophilus as rounded by admiring disciples, and crowds
once He did those of Moses." Epiphanius waited for hours to hear him preach. His
was soon drawn yet more deeply into these biography, written in the name of Polybius,
transactions. The bishops began on all sides an alleged companion of the saint (printed in
to speak against the heresies of Origen. the edd. of Petavius and Dindorf), is little
Theophilus having involved himself in a more than a collection of legends.
separate conflict of his own with Chrysostom Among his writings the most important are
at Constantinople and finding his cause there the Ancoratus and Panarion. The Ancoratus

302 EPIPHANIUS EPIPHANIUS


comprises in 121 sections a prolix exposition, copious extracts from Marcion's gospel (xlii.).
fuUof repetitions, of thedoctrinesof the Trinity, Against the Montanists (xlviii.) he uses an
the true humanity of Christ and the resurrec- anonymous controversial work of great anti-
tion of the body, with a constant polemic quity, from which Eusebius also (H. E. v. 17)
against Origen and the heresiarchs of his own gives large extracts in his article on the Alogi
;

time, especially Arians, Sabellians, Pneuma- (Haer. li.) he probably uses the work of
tomachi, and Dimoirites (Apollinarians). The Porphyry against the Christians. In the sec-
whole concludes with the Nicene creed in a tion against Origen (xliv.) copious extracts are
twofold form with various additions. This introduced from Methodius, irepl dvacrrdcrea;?.
work is chiefly of interest as a witness to the Several notices of heresies existing in Epi-
orthodoxy of its time. The Panarion is of phanius's own time are derived from his
much greater importance. It deals in three own observation. The last main division
books with 80 heresies. The catalogue is of the Panarion (Haer. Ixv.-lxxx.), where
essentially that already given in his Ancoratus he carefully notes the different opinions of
(cc. II and 12). He begins with heresies Arians, semi-Arians, Photinians, Marcellians,
existing at the time of our Lord's birth Pneumatomachi, Aerians, Aetians, Apollinar-
Barbarism, Scythianism, Hellenism, Judaism, ists, or Dimoirites, is one of the most important
Samaritanism. The last three are sub- contemporary authorities for the Trinitarian
divided ; Hellenism and Samaritanism into and Christological controversies since the
four each, Judaism into seven. Then follow beginning of the 4th cent. Although a fana-
60 heresies after the birth of Christ, from the tical partisan, and therefore not always to be
Simonians to the Massalians, including some relied on, Epiphanius speaks almost every-
which, as Epiphanius acknowledges, were where from his own knowledge and enhances
rather acts of schism than heresies. The extra- the value of his work by the literal transcrip-
ordinary division of pre-Christian heresies is tion of important documents. Of far inferior
founded on a passage he often quotes (Col. value are his attempted refutations, which
iii. 11). Barbarism lasted from Adam to are further marred by fanatical abuse, mis-
Noah, Scythianism from Noah to the migra- representation of opinions, and attacks on
tion of Peleg and Reu to Scythia. Hellenism, character. He takes particular pleasure in
he thinks, sprang up under Serug, understand- describing real or alleged licentious excesses
ing thereby idolatry proper. Of the various on the part of heretics his refutations proper
;

Greek schools of philosophy, which he regards contain sometimes really successful argument,
as particular heresies belonging to Hellenism but are generally weak and unhappy. The
and offers a complete list of them in the con- work concludes with the section irfpi vlcrTeui's,
clusion of his work, he shews himself but a glorifying description of the Holy Catholic
poorly informed. His communications con- Church, its faith, its manners, and its ordin-
cerning the various Jewish sects are for the ances, of great and manifold significance for
most part worthless and what he says of the
; the history of the church at that time. Each
Nasarenes and Ossenes (Haer. xviii. and xix.) section is preceded by a short summary. An
is derived purely from respectable but mis- 'Ai>aKe<pa\aioii(ns, probably the work of Epi-
understood narratives concerning the Ebion- phanius himself (preceded by a short extract
ites and Elkesaites. His accounts of the from an epistle of Epiphanius to Acacius and
Jewish-Christian and Gnostic sects of the 2nd Paulus, and followed by an extract from the
and 3rd cents, mingle valuable traditions section setting forth the Catholic faith), almost
with misunderstandings and fancies of his literally repeats the contents of these sum-
own. His pious zeal to excel all previous maries. This 'AvaKe<pa\alwcni, a work used
heresiologers by completing the list of heretics by St. Augustine and St. John Damascene,
led him into strange misunderstandings, apparently circulated as an independent
adventurous combinations, and arbitrary writing, as did bk. x. of the Philosophumena
assertions. He often frames long narratives and the summary added to Hippolytus's
out of very meagre hints. The strangest avvra-yixa against all heresies and preserved
phenomena are combined with a total absence
in a Latin translation in the Praescriptiones of
of criticism, and cognate matters are arbitrar-
Of another more copious epitome-
ily separated. Yet he often copies his author- Tertullian.
ities with slavish dependence, and so enables
midway between the brevity of the 'AvaKe<)>a,
\a/w(7i5 and the details of the Panarion, a large
critical commentators to collect a rich abund-
ance of genuine traditions from his works. fragment
was pub. by Dindorf from a Paris
his ed. of Epiphanius, vol. i.
For the section from Dositheus to Noetus MS., No. 854. in
(Haer. xiii.-lvii.) he used a writing now lost, pp. 339-369,
from a transcript made by Fr.
also the various readings given
but of very great importance, which is also Duebners (cf.
Cod. Cryptoferrar. vol. iii.
used by a contemporary writer, Philastrius of by Dindorf from a

Brixia viz. the work of Hippolytus, Against p. 2, praef. pp.
The best ed.,
iv.-xii.).
that of W. Dindorf (Leipz.
all Heresies. Besides this he used the well-
known work of Irenaeus of Lyons. These 1859-1862, 5 vols. sm. 8vo), contains all the
narratives are often pieced together in very genuine writings (the Ancoratus, Anacepha-
mechanical fashion, resulting in frequent re- laeosis,Panarion, and deMensuriset Ponderibus
petitions and contradictory statements. in the Gk. text, de Gemmis in all three text
Besides these two, he had access to many forms, and the two epistles in Jerome's
original works of heretics themselves and trans.), and also the spurious homilies, the
numerous trustworthy oral traditions. Very epitome, and the Vita Epiphanii of Polybius.
valuable are his extracts (Haer. xxxi.) from an Of works and treatises concerning Epipha-
old Valentinian work, the Ep. of Ptolemaeus to nius may be mentioned the book attributed to
Flora, which is quoted entire (xxxiii.), and the the abbe Gervais, L'Hisloire et la vie de St.
;

EPIPHANIUS EPIPHANIUS SCHOLASTICUS 303

ipiphane (Paris, 1738) Tillemoat, Memoires,


;
severity to the obdurate. Epiphanius is to
t. X. pp. 484 scq., 822 seq. Fabricius, Bibl.
;
complete the reunion himself. (Labbe, Concil.
Graec. ed. Harl. viii. pp. 261 seq. Schrockh,
; iv. 1534, 1537, 1545, 1546, 1555, ed. 1671 ;

Christliche Kirchengeschichte, t. x. pp. 3 ff. ;


Patr. Lat. Ixiii. 497, 507, 523.) The severe
Eberhard, Die Betheiligung des Epiphanius an measures by which Justin was establishing the
dem Streite iiber Origenes (Trier, 1859) Lip-
; supremacy of the Catholics in the East were
sius, Zur Quellenkritik des Epiphanios (Wien, arousing Theodoric, the Arian master of Italy,
1865). [R.A.I..] to retaliation in the West. Pope John I., the
Epiphanius (17), i6th bp., 5th patriarch successor of Hormisdas, became thoroughly
of Constantinople, a.d. 520-535, succeeding alarmed ; and in 525, at the demand of
John II. Theodoric, proceeded to Constantinople to
The eastern empire was now rising to great obtain the revocation of the edict against the
splendour through the victories of its generals, Arians and get their churches restored to them
Belisarius and Narses. Idolatry was univer- (Marcellin. Chron. ann. 525 ; Labbe, Concil.
sally suppressed, heathen books were burnt, iv. 1600). Great honour was paid to pope
pagan images destroyed, the professors of the John in the eastern capital. The people went
old religion imprisoned and flogged. At out twelve miles to receive him, bearing
Constantinople the zeal of Justinian for a ceremonial tapers and crosses. The emperor
church policy was shewn during the patri- Justin prostrated himself before him, and
archate of Epiphanius by laws {e.g. in 528 and wished to be crowned by his hand. The patri-
529) regulating episcopal elections and duties. arch Epiphanius invited him to perform Mass
These enactments, and the passivity of Epi- but the pope, mindful of the traditional policy
phanius and his clergy, are remarkable proofs of encroachment, refused to do so until they
of the entire absence as yet of any claims such had offered him the first seat. With high
as the clergy later asserted for exclusively solemnity he said the office in Latin on
clerical legislation for the spirituality. Easter Day, communicating with all the
The first conspicuous office of Epiphanius bishops of the East except Timothy of Alex-
was the charge of the catechumens at Con- andria, the declared enemy of Chalcedon
stantinople. In 519, the year before his (Baron. 525, 8, 10; Pagi, ix. 349, 351 AA.;

election, he was sent with bp. John and count SS. May 27 ; Schrockh, xvi. 102, xviii. 214-
Licinius to Macedonia to receive the docu- 216 Gibbon, iii. 473
; Milman, Lat. Christ.
;

ments " libellos," or subscriptions of those i. 302). In 531 the dispute between Rome
who wished reunion with the Catholic church, and Constantinople was revived by the appeal
at the request of the apocrisiarius of Dorotheus of Stephen, metropolitan of Larissa, to pope
bp. of Thessalonica. On Feb. 25, 520, he Boniface, against the sentence of Epiphanius.
was elected bishop by the emperor Justin, Stephen was eventually deposed, notwith-
with the consent of bishops, monks, and standing his appeal. On June 5, 535, Epi-
people. He is described in the letter of the phanius died, after an episcopate of 14 years
synod of Constantinople to pope Hormisdas and 3 months (Theoph. a.d. 529 in Patr.
as "holding the right faith, and maintaining Gk. cviii. 477). All that is known of him is to
a fatherly care for orphans" (Patr. Lat. Ixiii. his advantage.
483). He accepted the conditions of peace Besides his letters to Hormisdas, we have
between East and West concluded by his the sentence of his council against Severus and
predecessor, the patriarch John, with pope Peter {Pair. Gk. Ixxxvi. 783-786). Forty-five
Hormisdas ratifying them at a council at canons are attributed to him (Assemani, Bibl.
;

Constantinople, where he accepted also the Orient. 619). [w.m.s.]


decrees of Chalcedon. Dioscorus, agent of Epiplianius (39) Soholastious, an ecclesiastic
Hormisdas at Constantinople, writes of his c. A.D. 510, of whom we know scarcely any-
fair promises, but adds, " What he can fulfil thing except that he was the friend of Cassio-
we don't know. He has not yet asked us to DORUS, the celebrated head of the Monasteriutn
communion" (ib. 482). Four letters remain Vivariense. He apparently bore the name
of Epiphanius to Hormisdas, telling him of Scholasticus, not so much because of any
his election, sending him his creed, and de- devotion to literature or theology, but in the
claring that he condemned all those whose sense that word frequently had in the middle
name the pope had forbidden to be recited in ages, meaning a chaplain, amanuensis, or
the diptychs. Epiphanius adopts the symbol general assistant of any dignitary of the
of Nicaea, the decrees of Ephesus, Constanti- church (Du Cange, Glossarium, s.v.). In this
nople, and Chalcedon, and the letters of pope relationship, in all probability, Epiphanius
Leo in defence of the faith. His second letter stood to his distinguished master, by whom
was accompanied by a chalice of gold sur- he was summoned to take a part in urging his
rounded with precious stones, a patina of gold, monks to classical and sacred studies, and
a chalice of silver, and two veils of silk, which especially to the transcription of manuscripts.
he presented to the Roman church. In order To Epiphanius was assigned the translation
to make the peace general, he advises the pope into Latin of the histories of Socrates, Sozo-
not to be too rigorous in exacting the extrusion men, and Theodoret. Cassiodorus revised the
of the names of former bishops from diptychs. work, corrected faults of style, abridged it,
His excuse for the bishops of Pontus, Asia, and arranged it into one continuous history
and the East is composed in very beautiful of the church. He then published it for the
language. The answers of Hormisdas are use of the clergy. The book attained a high
given in the Acts of the Council of Constanti- reputation. It was known as the Tripartite
nople held under Mennas. He trusts to the History and, along with the translation of
;

prudence and experience of Epiphanius, and Eusebius by Rufinus, it became the manual of
recommends lenity towards the returning, church history for the clergy of the West for
,

304 ERACLIUS ETHELBERT [I.

many centuries. The book is generally pub. son of Irminric, and great-grandson of Oeric,
as if Cassiodorus were its author, under the title surnamed Oisc, the son of Hengist, suc-
of Historiae Ecclesiasticae Ttipartitae Epitome. ceeded to the kingdom of the Kentishmen
,

Epiphanius translated several additional as the heir of the " Aescingas " in 560 (the
works, such as the commentaries of Didymus date, 565, in the Chronicle is inconsistent with
upon the Proverbs of Solomon and the seven Bede's reckoning given below). Some years
Catholic Epistles, those of Epiphanius bp. of after his accession he provoked a conflict with
Cyprus upon the Canticles, and perhaps others, Ceawlin, the West Saxon king, and Cutha,
of which one survives, and may be found in his brother, was defeated at Wimbledon with
Labbe (Cone. t. v.), namely, his Co(/ej;ii«cyc/icMS, the loss of two ealdormen and driven back
a work to which he was also urged by Cassio- into Kent (Sax. Chron. a. 658). Ethelbert had
dorus. It is a collection of letters addressed already married Bertha or Berhte, daughter of
by different synods to the emperor Leo in de- Charibert, king of Paris, on the understanding
fence of the decrees of the council of Chalcedon that she should be free to practise " the rites
against Timotheus Aelurus. [w.m.] of her own Christian religion," under a bishop
EracliUS (1) (Heradius, in the older edi- named Liudhard, chosen by her parents (Bede,
tions Eradius), deacon of the church of Hippo i. 25). Ethelbert faithfully observed this
A.D. 425, had inherited considerable property, compact, but shewed no curiosity about his
"
part of which he spent in raising a " memoria wife's creed. She and her episcopal chaplain
of the martyr [Stephen] ; the rest he offered worshipped undisturbed in the old Roman-
as a gift to the church. St. Augustine, fearing British church of St. Martin, on a hill E. of
that the absolute acceptance of such a gift Ethelbert's city of Canterbury (Bede, i. 26).
from so young a man might be the subject of Ethelbert succeeded, on the death of Ceawlin
future reproval or regret, caused Eraclius first in 593. to that pre-eminence among the Saxon
to invest the money in land, which might be and Anglican kings usually described as the
given back to him should any unforeseen Bretwaldadom (see Freeman, Norm. Conq. i.
reason for restitution arise. On becoming one 542). Four years later, in the spring of 597,
of Augustine's clergy, Eraclius made his he was brought face to face with a band of
poverty complete by setting free a few slaves Christian missionaries, headed by Augustine,
whom he had retained (Aug. Serm. 336, vol. whom pope Gregory the Great had sent to
v. 1387). In 426 Augustine was summoned " bring him the best of all messages, which
to Milevis, to obviate some threatened dis- would ensure to all who received it eternal life
sensions. Severus, the late bishop, had and an endless kingdom with the true and
designated his successor in his lifetime, but living God " (Bede, i. 29). Ethelbert had sent
had made his choice known to his clergy only. word to the foreigners to remain in the Isle of
This caused discontent, and the interference Thanet, where they had landed, and " supplied
of Augustine was judged necessary to secure them with all necessaries until he should see
the unanimous acceptance of the bishop so what to do with them." He soon came into
chosen. Augustine, then in his 72nd year, the isle, and sitting down with his " gesiths "
was thus reminded of the expedience of or attendant thanes in the open air (for he
securing his own church from similar trouble feared the effect of spells under a roof) listened
at his death, and he made choice of Eraclius, attentively to the speech of Augustine. [AuG-
then apparently the junior presbyter of the GusTiNus.] Then he spoke in some such
church, to be his coadjutor and designate words as Bede has rendered immortal. " Your
successor (D. C. A. i. 228). Only, though he words and your promises are fair but seeing
;

had himself been ordained bishop in the life- they are new and uncertain, I cannot give in
time of his predecessor, Valerius, he now held to them, and leave the rites which I, with the
that this had been an unconscious violation whole race of the Angles, have so long observed.
of the Nicene canon against having two But since you are strangers who have come
bishops in the same church, and therefore from afar, and, as I think I have observed,
resolved that Eraclius, while discharging all have desired to make us share in what you
the secular duties of the see, should remain a believe to be true and thoroughly good, we
presbyter until his own death. To obviate do not mean to hurt you, but rather shall take
future dispute, he assembled his people (Sept. care to receive you with kindly hospitality,
26, 426) to obtain their consent to the arrange- and to afford you what you need for your
ment, having the notaries of the church in support nor do we forbid you to win over
;

attendance to draw up regular " gesta " of the to your faith, by preaching, as many as you
proceedings, which those present were asked can." He gave them a dwelling in Canter-
to subscribe {Ep. 213, vol. ii. p. 788). bury, N.W. of the present cathedral precinct.
The capture of Hippo by the Vandals pre- They began to make converts, as Bede tells
vented the arrangements from taking effect, us, through the charm of their preaching, and
and Augustine does not appear to have had the still more powerful influence of consistent
any successor in his see. Eraclius, in 427, lives. Shortly afterwards Ethelbert expressed
held a private discussion with Maximinus, the which
his belief in the truth of those promises
Arian bishop, which led to a public disputationhe had described as unheard-of, and was
between Maximinus and Augustine (Coll. cum baptized the time, according to Canterbury
;

Max. viii. 650). Two sermons by Eraclius tradition, was June i, the Whitsun-eve of
are preserved, the first of which, preached in 597, the place, undoubtedly, was St. Martin's.
Augustine's presence, is almost all taken up The king proved one of the truest and noblest
with compliments and apologies (v. 1523 and of royal converts. He built a new palace at
72, Append, p. 131). [g.s.] Regulbium or Reculver, abandoning his old
Ethelbert (1) I. (properly Aethelberht or abode to Augustine, now consecrated as
Aethelbriht ;Bede, Aedilberct), king of Kent, archbishop, and adding the gift of various
ETHERIA EUCHERIUS 305
" needful possessions " (Bede, i. 26). He and both appear, from the title of the com-
assisted Augustinein converting an old Roman- mentary on Kings, falsely ascribed to Eucher-
built church into " the cathedral church of ius, to have become bishops during the lifetime
the Holy Saviour," and also built, " after of their father.
exhortation," a monastery outside the E. wall The civic duties of Eucherius (whatever they
of the city, dedicated to SS. Peter and Paul, were) appear to have been discharged con-
but afterwards known as " St Augustine's." scientiously and vigorously. Sidonius Apol-
He received by the hands of Mellitus, who, linaris is loud in the praise of his friend as a
with others, joined the mission in 601, a letter layman, and compares him {Ep. viii.) to the
of congratulation and exhortation from pope Bruti and Torquati of old. But the world,
Gregory and lent his aid as Bretwalda to
; then in a very turbulent and unsettled con-
arrangements for a conference, near the Bristol dition, palled upon Eucherius, and while still
Channel, between his archbishop and some in the vigour of life he sought a retreat from
bishops of the ancient British church. Among its cares and temptations on the island of
the many " good services which he rendered Lerinum, the smaller of the two isles now
"
to his people," Bede reckons those " dooms known as the Lerins, off Antibes and sub-
;

or decrees which, " after the example of the sequently on the larger one of Lero, now
Romans, he framed with the consent of his called Sainte Marguerite. Here he pursued
wise men," and among which he first of all an ascetic life of study and worship, devoting
set down what satisfaction {bot) was to be himself also to the education of his children.
made by any one who robbed the church, the During this period he composed the two un-
bishop, or the clergy. For he was " minded doubtedly genuine works which we possess.
to afford his protection to those whose doc- Intercourse, both personal and by corre-
trine he had received " (Bede, ii. 5). For spondence, with eminent ecclesiastics tended
these dooms, 90 in number, extant in the to make widely known his deserved reputation
Textus Roffensis, see Thorpe's Ancient Laws for sanctity and for a varied and considerable
and Institutes of England, p. i. Ethelbert's learning, and c. 434 the church of Lyons
nephew Sabert, the son of his sister Ricula, unanimously, unsought, elected him bishop.
held the dependent kingship of the East He brought to the discharge of this office the
Saxons, and embraced the faith under the influence and experience acquired in lay
persuasion of his uncle and overlord, who government, as well as the spiritual training
built a church of St. Paul in London for and erudition won in his retirement. He was
Mellitus as bishop of that kingdom. He also bishop some 16 years, the remainder of his life,
built at " Hrof's Castle," i.e. Rochester, a and Claudianus Mamertus speaks of him as
church of St. Andrew for a bishop named " magnorum sui saeculi pontificum longe
Justus ;
" gave many gifts to both prelates, maximus." He was succeeded by his son
and added lands and possessions for the use Veranius, while Geneva became the see of his
of those who were with them." It was doubt- other son Salonius.
less in Ethelbert's reign and under his influence Works.— I. Epistola, sen Libellus, de laude
that Redwald, king of the East Angles, while Eremi. This short treatise, addressed to
visiting Kent, received baptism, although, as St. Hilary of Aries, is assigned, with proba-
his after-conduct shewed, his convictions were bility, to A.D. 428. The Collationes of Cassian,
not deep (Bede, ii. 19). After Bertha's death, composed at the request of Eucherius, had
Ethelbert married a young wife whose name given so vivid a picture of the hermits of the
is unknown. His last days must have been Thebaid as to call forth this epistle. The
saddened by anxiety as to the future reign of author calls attention to the blessings recorded
his son Eadbald, who refused to receive the in Holy Scriptiure as connected with lonely
faith of Christ. Ethelbert died, after what spots {e.g. the law was given in the wilderness
Bede describes as a most glorious reign of 56 and the chosen race fed with bread from
years, on Feb. 24, a.d. 616, and was buried heaven) and to the sanction given to retire-
beside his first wife in the " porticus " or ment by the examples of Moses, Elijah, St.
transept of St. Martin, within the church of John Baptist, and our Lord Himself. In re-
SS. Peter and Paul, leaving behind a memory ference to this last he exclaims, " O laus
held in grateful reverence as that of the first magna deserti, ut diabolus, qui vicerat in
English Christian king (Hardy, Cat. Mat. i. Paradiso, in Eremo vinceretur " ;
and notices
176, 214-216, 259). Cf. The Mission of St. the withdrawal of Christ to solitude for
Augustine, according to the Original Documents, prayer, and the fact of the Transfiguration
by A. J. Mason, D.D. (Camb. 1897). [w.b.] taking place on a mountain.
Etheria. [Sylvia.] 2. Epistola Paraenetica ad Valerianum cog-
Eucherius (1), St., bp. of Lyons, prob. born natuni. " De contemptu mundi et saecularis
late in 4th cent. except perhaps St. Irenaeus philosophiae." Its date is probably c. a.d.
;

the most distinguished occupant of that see. 432. Eucherius evidently desires his highly-
Authorities. —
Sidonius Apollinaris, Ep. lib. placed and wealthy kinsman to follow him in
Valerian is re-
iii. 8.
; St. Isidorus, de Ecclesiasticis Scriptori- retirement from the world.
bus, cap. XV. Gennadius, de Illustribus Eccle- minded of the many saintly doctors of the
;

siae Scriptoribus, cap. Ixiii. Cassianus, some church who had once occupied an exalted
;

of whose Collationes (xi.-xvii.) are addressed to secular position ; e.g. Clement of Rome,
Eucherius and Honoratus. [Cassianus (11 ).] Gregory Thaumaturgus, Gregory Nazianzen,
Born in a high social position, he married Basil, Paulinus of Nola, Ambrose, etc. The
Galla, a lady of his own station. Their two Latin of this epistle won the approbation of
sons, Salonius and Veranius, received an Erasmus, who published an edition, accom-
ecclesiastical education in the monastery of panied by schoha, at Basle, a.d. 1520.
Lerinum under St. Honoratus and Salvanius 3. Liber jormularum spiritalis intelligentiae
;

20
306 EUCHITE3 EUCHITES
[al. de formd spiritalis intellectiis] ad Veranium the West, but in the East, though probably
filitim. This is a defence of the lawfulness of at no time very numerous, they are heard of
the allegorical sense of Scripture, pleading the for centuries; and when the Bogomiles of the
testimony of Scripture itself e.g. Ps. Ixxvii.
; 12th cent, appeared, the name Messalian still
[Ixxviii. A. v.] 2, and the use of such phrases survived, and the new heretics were accounted
as " the hand of God," " the eyes of the Lord," descendants of the ancient sect.
etc., which cannot be taken ad literam. It In the time of Epiphanius the Messalians
displays a very extensive acquaintance with scarcely were a sect, having no settled system
the Bible and anticipates many favourite nor recognized leader and Epiphanius im-
;

usages of mediaeval mystics and hymn- putes to them no error of doctrine, but only
writers ; such as the term anagoge (dvaywyri) criticizes their manner of life.
for the application of Scripture to the heavenly Two accounts of Euchite doctrine are
Jerusalem, identification of the digitus Dei apparently of greater antiquity than the
with the Holy Spirit (St. Luke xi. 20, with authors who preserve them. One is given by
St. Matt. xij. 28) and the like. Timotheus (de Receptione Haer. in Cotelier's
4. Instructionum Libri Duo ad Salonium Mon. Ecc. Gr. iii. 400). This writer was a
filium. Of this treatise, the former book dis- presbyter of Constantinople in the 6th cent.
cusses difficulties in the O. and N.T., such as His coincidences with Theodoret are too
the scriptural evidence for the doctrine of the numerous to be well explained except on the
Holy Trinity the permission of polygamy to supposition of common sources.
;
These
the patriarchs the existence of evil, which sources probably were the Acts of the councils
;

(with many other divines) he makes simply of Antioch and Side, which contained sum- - ^

the privation of good, etc. The second book maries of Messalian doctrine. Theodoret may
deals with Hebrew names, but does not possibly also have used a Messalian book
display a very profound acquaintance with called Asceticus, the doctrines of which,
Hebrew. Eucherius quotes with much re- Photius tells us, had been exposed and
spect the version of the O.T. by Aquila. anathematized at the council of Ephesus in
There are also Homilies by him, and some 431. Probably that book furnished the
other works are ascribed to him of doubtful " heads of the impious doctrine of the Mes-
authenticity. salians taken from their own book " given by
Editions.— There is no complete edition of Joannes Damascenus {de Haer. ap. Cotelier,
the writings of Eucherius. For this art. the Mon. Ecc. Gr. i. 302, and 0pp. Le Quien, i. 95),
Bibliotheca Patrum Maxima (Lugduni), a.d. but which would seem also (see Wolf, Hist.
1677 (t. vi. p. 822), has been used. Cf. A. Bogomil. p. 11) to have been separately pre-
Gouillond, 5/. Eucher. Lerins et V Eglise de served in two MSS. at Leipzig (Acta Erudit-
Lyon an. V" Siecle (Lyons, 1881). [j.g.c] orum, 1696, p. 299 ; 1699, p. 157
; and in the
Euohites. Doctrines and Practices. —
beginning of the last quarter of the 4th cent,
At the Bodleian, Cod. Barocc. 185).
They held that in consequence of Adam's
or a little earlier, fanatics made their appear- sin every one had from his birth a demon,
ance in Syria, whose manner of life was said substantially united to his soul, which incited
to have been introduced from Mesopotamia, him to sin, and whichbaptism was ineffectual to
and who were known by the Syriac name of expel. Dealing only with past sin, baptism did
but shear off the surface growth, and did not
Messalians or Massalians (VpVD), praying touch the root of the evil. The true remedy
intense, concentrated prayer, continued
people. X7V oravit is found in the Chaldee was till it produced a state from which all affections
(Dan. vi. 11; Ezra vi. 10). Epiphanius, and volitions were banished (aTratkiCL). In this
whose account of them is the last article (80) the soul felt as sensible a consciousness of
of his work on heresies, translates the name
union with its heavenly bridegroom as an
yivxiufvoC), but in the next generation the earthly bride in the embraces of her husband.
Messalians had obtained a technical name in Then the demon went out in the spittle or in
Greek also, and were known as Euchites the mucus of the nose, or was seen to depart
(ei'X'Fai or evxirai). They professed to give in smoke or in the form of a serpent, and there
themselves entirely to prayer, refusing to was in like manner sensible evidence of the
work and living by begging thus differing entrance of the Holy Spirit. St. Augustine
;

from the Christian monks, who supported (Haer. 5 7) who had some source of information
,

themselves by their labour. They were of independent of Epiphanius, ascribes to them a


both sexes, went about together, and in fancy that the Holy Spirit might be seen to
summer weather slept in the streets pro- enter in the appearance of innocuous fire, and
miscuously, as persons who had renounced the the demon to pass out of the man's mouth in
world and had no possession or habitation of the form of a sow with her farrow. Possibly
their own. Epiphanius dates the commence- language intended by them metaphorically
ment of this sect from the reign of Constantius was misunderstood ; for they described the
(d. A.D. 361). Theodoret [H. E. iv. 11 Haer. soul of him who had not Christ in him as the
;

Fab. iv. 10 ; Rel. Hist, iii., Vit. Marcian. vol. abode of serpents and venomous beasts. They
iii. 1 146) dates its beginning a few years later further thought that he who had arrived at
under Valentinian. There seems no founda- the passionless state could see the Holy Trinity
tion for the charge that the Euchites were with his bodily eyes that the three hypos-
;

derived from the Manichees. Epiphanius con- tases of the Trinity coalesced into one, which
nects them with heathen devotees whom he united itself with worthy souls. This doctrine
calls Euphemites, and who it seems had also no doubt furnishes the key to the account
been known as Messalians. The Euchites given by Epiphanius of the eft'acement of the
appear never to have made any entrance into sense of distinct personality in members of this
;

EUCHITES EUCHITES 307

sect. They held the possibility in the passionless Flavian informed the bishops of Edessa and
state of a perfection in which sin was impossible neighbourhood what had been done, and
such a man needed neither instruction for his received an approving reply. The Messalians
soul nor fasting to discipline his body, for banished from Syria went to Pamphylia, and
delicate food and luxurious living could stir there met new antagonists. They were also
no evil desire in him. It is probably a mis- condemned by a council of 25 bishops held at
conception to suppose that they claimed that Side and presided over by Amphilochius of
he could be guilty of licentious conduct with- Iconium, which sent a synodical letter to
out falling from perfection. The soul of him Flavian, informing him of their proceedings.
who was " spiritual," as they boasted them- In their Acts Amphilochius gave a full state-
selves to be, was changed into the divine ment of the Messalian tenets expressed in their
nature ; he could see things invisible to own words. Photius represents the synod at
ordinary men ; and so some of them used to Antioch just mentioned as having been called
dance by way of trampling on the demons in consequence of the synodical letter from
which they saw, a practice from which they Side, but this is more than doubtful, though
were called Choreutae. The things they saw Theodoret also, in his Eccl. Hist., mentions the
in their dreams they took for realities, and proceedings in Pamphylia before mentioning
boasted that they then acquired a knowledge those which resulted in the banishment of the
of future events, could see the condition of Messalians to Pamphylia. We cannot fix the
departed souls, and could read men's hearts. year of these proceedings, but c. 390 will
Both sexes might partake of this divine il- probably not be far wrong. Measures were
lumination, and they had female teachers, taken against the Messalians in Armenia also.
whom they honoured more than the clergy. Letoius bp. of Melitene obtained information
The use of the Lord's Supper they regarded from Flavian as to the proceedings in Antioch.
as a thing indifferent it could neither benefit
: Finding some monasteries in his diocese in-
the worthy nor harm the unworthy receiver ;
fected by this heresy, he set fire to them, and
but there was no reason for separating from hunted the wolves from his sheepfold. A less
the church by refusing it. They disparaged zealous Armenian bishop was rebuked by
all the ordinary forms of Christian charity as Flavian for favour shewn to these heretics.
compared with the merit of bestowing alms In Pamphylia the contest lasted for several
on one of their members. They had specula- years. The orthodox leaders were another
tions about our Lord's humanity, of which the Amphilochius, bp. of Side, and Verinianus bp.
most intelligible is that the body which He of Perga, who were stimulated by energetic
assumed had been full of demons which it letters from Atticus bp. of Constantinople, and
was necessary for Him to expel. later, in a.d. 426, from the synod held for the
History. —The first whom we read of as a consecration of Sisinnius, the successor of
leader of the sectis Adelphius ;hence " Adel- Atticus, in which Theodotus of Antioch and a
phians " was one of their many names. He bishop named Neon are mentioned by Photius
was a layman of Mesopotamia. Epiphanius as taking active parts. Messalianism had
speaks of them in his time as having no recog- probably at that time given some trouble in
nized leader. Theodoret tells that Flavian Constantinople itself. Nilus (de Vol. Paup.
bp. of Antiorh sent monks to bring the ad Magnam, 21) couples with Adelphius of
Messalian teachers at Edessa to Antioch. Mesopotamia, Alexander, who polluted Con-
They denied their doctrines, and charged their stantinople with like teaching, and against
accusers with calumny. Flavian then used whom he contends that their idleness, instead
an artifice afterwards repeated by Alexius of aiding devotion, gave scope to evil thoughts
Comnenus in the case of the Bogomiles. He and passions and was inimical to the true
affected to take their part, treated the aged spirit of prayer. Tillemont has conjectured
Adelphius with great respect, and led him to that this was the Alexander who about this
believe that he would find in an aged bishop time founded the order of the Acoimetae (see
one able to understand and sympathize with D. C. A. S.V.), but the identification is far from
views which younger men rejected only from certain. There is no evidence that the latter
want of experience. Adelphius, having been was a heretic save that his name has not
thus enticed into a full disclosure of his senti- been honoured with the prefix of saint ;
and
ments, was rebuked in the words addressed by his institution would scarcely have met with
Daniel to the wicked elder (Susanna, 52) andthe success it did if it could have been repre-
punished as convicted out of his own mouth. sented as devised by a notorious Messalian
He and his party were beaten, excommunicat- to carry out the notions of his sect as to the
ed, and banished, and were not allowed, as duty of incessant prayer.
they wished, the alternative of recantation, Between the accession of Sisinnius and the
no confidence being felt in their sincerity,council of Ephesus in 431, John of Antioch
especially as they were found communicating wrote to Nestorius about the Messalians, and
in friendly terms with Messalians whom they Theodosius legislated against them (xvi. Cod.
had anathematized. Probably it was on this Theod. de Haer. vol. vi. p. 187). At Ephesus
occasion that Flavian held a svnod against Valerian of Iconium, and Amphilochius of
them (Photius, 52), attended by three other Side, in the name of the bps. of Lycaonia
bishops (Bizus of Seleucia, a Mesopotamian and Pamphylia, obtained from the council a
bishop, Maruthas, described by Photius as confirmation of the decrees made against the
bp. of the Supharenians, and Samus) and by Euchites at Constantinople in 426 and the
about 30 clergy. With Adelphius there were anathematization of the Messalian book,
condemned two persons named Sabas, one of Asceticus, passages from which Valerian laid
them a monk and a eunuch, Eustathius of before the synod (Mansi, iv. i477)- Fabricius
Edessa, Dadoes, Hermas, Symeon, and others. names Agapius, and Walch Adelphius, as the
308 EUCHITES EUDOXIUS
author of this book, but the writer is really Lampetians, Messalians, Adelphians, or Mar-
unknown. These proceedings at Ephesus cianists, with giving but three years to ascetic
were unknown to Gregory the Great (Ep. vi. life and the rest of their life to all manner of
14, ad Narsem, vol. vii. p. 361), but are men- debauchery.
tioned by Photius, and the decree was read at We hear no more of the Messalians till the
the second council of Nicaea (Mansi, xii. 1025). Bogomile heresy arose in the i2tb cent.
The cause of Gregory's oversight may have Of modern writers, the most useful are
been that his correspondent cited to him as Tillemont, viii. 530 Walch, Hist, der Ketz.
;

Ephesine the Acts of the council of Antioch. iii. 418 and Neander, Ch. Hist. iii. 323. [g.s.]
;

We learn from the Ephesine decree that Mes- Eudoxius (2), 8th bp. of Constantinople
salianism had also been condemned at Alex- (360-370), previously bp. of Germanicia and
andria, and Timotheus mentions Cyril as an of Antioch, one of the most influential Arians.
antagonist of these heretics. In the Ep. ad Between 324 and 331 St. Eustathius was bp.
Calosyrium (prefixed to the tract adv. Anthro- of Antioch. Eudoxius came to him seeking
pomorph. vii. 363) Cyril rebukes certain monks holy orders. Eustathius found his doctrine
who made piety a cloak for laziness, but there unsound and refused him. But when Eusta-
is no evidence that they were Euchites. The thius was deposed, the Arians or Eusebians
articles of the Asceticus were the subject of had everything their own way, and admitted
24 anathemas by Archelaus (bp. of Cae- Eudoxius to orders and made him bp. of
sarea in Cappadocia some time between the Germanicia, on the confines of Syria, Cilicia,
two Ephesine synods of 431 and 449), and of and Cappadocia. This bishopric he held at
two letters by Heracleidas of Nyssa (c. 440). least 17 years, the dark period of the principal
The next Euchite leader of whom we read is intrigues against Athanasius, and of the reigns
Lampetius, after whom his followers were of the sons of Constantine. In 34 1 was held,
called Lampetians, and who is said to have at Antioch, the council of the Dedication or
been the first of the sect to attain the dignity Encaenia, under Placillus. Eudoxius of Ger-
of priesthood. He had been ordained by manicia attended. He was an Arian pure
Alypius, bp. of Caesarea (Cappadocia) in 458. and simple, a disciple of Aetius, a friend of
He was accused to Alypius by the presbyter Eunomius. The council produced four creeds,
Gerontius, superior of the monks at Glitis, in which the Eusebian party succeeded in
of undue familiarity with women, unseemly making their doctrine as plausible as might
language, scoffing at those who took part in be, and the second of these became known as
the musical services of the church as being the " Creed of the Dedication." Athanasius
still under the law when they ought to make says that Eudoxius was sent with Martyrius
melody only in their hearts, and of other and Macedonius to take the new creed of
Euchite doctrines and practices. The exam- Antioch to Italy. This new creed may, how-
ination of the charges was delegated by Aly- ever, have been the Macrostich, or Long
pius to Hormisdas bp. of Comana, and Lam- Formula, drawn up at a later council of
petius was degraded from the priesthood. He Antioch. In 343 or 347 the rival councils
wrote a work called the Testament, answered of Sardica and Philippopolis were held. At
by the Monophysite Severus, afterwards bp. the latter was drawn up a creed more Arian
of Antioch. A fragment of this answer is than those of Antioch, and it was signed by
preserved in a catena belonging to New Col- Eudoxius. At the end of 347 Eudoxius was
lege, Oxford (Wolf, Anecdota Graeca, iii. 182). in attendance on the emperor in the West,
It insists on the duty of praising God both when news came of the death of Leontius of
with heart and voice. The same catena con- Antioch. Excusing himself on the plea that
tains an extract from another work of Severus the affairs of Germanicia required his presence,
against the Euchites, an epistle to a bp. Solon. he hastened to Antioch, and, representing
Photius tells that in Rhinocorura two persons himself as nominated by the emperor, got
named Alpheus, one of them a bishop, de- himself made bishop, and sent Asphalus, a
fended the orthodoxy of Lampetius, and were presbyter of Antioch, to make the best of the
in consequence deposed. He learned this from case at court. Constantius wrote to the
a letter written by Ptolemy, another bishop of church of Antioch :
" Eudoxius went to seek
the same district, to Timotheus of Alexandria. you without my sending him. . . To what
.

There have been at Alexandria several bishops restraint will men be amenable, who impu-
of that name, but probably the Timotheus in- dently pass from city to city, seeking with a
tended is the one contemporary with Lam- most unlawful appetite every occasion to
petius (460-482). enrich themselves ? " Meanwhile the new
The next Messalian leader of whom we read prelate was preaching open Arianism and
(in Timotheus) is Marcian, a money-changer, persecuting the orthodox. In the first year
who lived in the middle of the 6th cent., and of his episcopate at Antioch he held a council,
from whom these sectaries came to be called which received the creed of Sirmium. An
Marcianists. The correspondence of Gregory idea may be formed of his sermons from three
the Great, already referred to, arose out of the different sources. Hilary of Poictiers, then
condemnation under this name, unknown in in the East, heard Eudoxius in his cathedral,
the West, in 595, of one John, a presbyter of and wished his ears had been deaf, so horribly
Chalcedon. He appealed to the pope, who blasphemous was the language. Theodoret
E e had not him orthodox, complaining that and Epiphanius report him as boasting
renounced that
even been able to make out from he had the same knowledge about God as
his accusers what the heresy of Marcianism God had about Himself.
was. In the 7th cent. Maximus, in his A council was held at Seleucia in Sept. 359,
scholia on the Pseudo-Dionysius (II. 88), the orthodox forming a very small minority.
charges those whom he calls indifferently The majority signed the " Creed of the Dedi-
EULALIUS EULALIUS 309
cation " ; Eudoxius, who was
present, was had warned the people to proceed to a new
deposed by the less heretical party, and ap- election without disturbance, Eulalius the
pears to have sought the shelter of the court archdeacon had been taken to the Lateran
at Constantinople. Here, by the aid of the church by the clergy and people, duly elected,
Acacians, he secured his appointment as patri- and ordained ;while certain presbyters, ac-
arch on the deposition of Macedonius, and on companied by a crowd, had gone with Boni-
Jan. 27, 360, took possession of his throne in facius, a presbyter, to the church of Theodora,
the presence of 72 bishops. On Feb. 15 and, though warned to do nothing rashly, had
the great church of Constantinople, St. Sophia, ordained him in the church of St. Marcellus,
begun in 342 by the emperor Constantius, was and thence took him to St. Peter's basihca.
dedicated. Eudoxius, mounting his episcopal He requests the instructions of the emperor,
throne before the expectant multitude of with whom, he says, it rests to give judgment
courtiers, ecclesiastics, and citizens, began in such a case. Honorius replies (Jan. 3, 419)
with the words :
" The Father
the is acre^-qs, by ordering Boniface to be expelled from the
Son is evaelSrjs." A
great tumult of indigna- city, and the authors of the sedition in his
tion arose on all sides in St. Sophia. The favour punished, Eulalius having been duly
orator, unabashed, explained " The Father : appointed according to the rule of Catholic
is d(Tf|S?7s because He honours nobody the ;
discipline (competens numerus ordinantium,
Son is eiKTejirii because He honours the solemnitas temporis, locique qualitas) and the
Father." The new cathedral echoed with rival election being deficient in these respects.
peals of uncontrollable laughter. Thus, says Symmachus rephes (Jan. 8) that he has carried
Socrates (ii. 43), these heresiarchs tore the out the emperor's order, not without resistance
church to pieces by their captious subtilties. on the part of Boniface, who had caused a
Eudoxius consecrated his friend Eunomius messenger sent to forbid a procession to be
to the see of Cyzicus but such complaints
;
beaten by the people ; had held the proces-
were brought to the emperor that he ordered sion ; and had forcibly entered the city, but
Eudoxius to depose him. Eudoxius, terrified had been expelled by an opposing mob while
;

by menaces, persuaded him quietly to retire. Eulalius had celebrated service in the basilica
In 365 an attack was made on Eudoxius by of St. Peter amid the acclamations of almost
the semi-Arians, now called Macedonians. the whole city.
Holding a meeting at Lampsacus, they signed Meantime the presbyters who supported
the " Creed of the Dedication," cited Eudoxius Boniface had sent a different account. They
and his party before them, and, as they did not had been unable, they say, to assemble in the
come, sentenced them to deprivation but ;
customary place, the Lateran church, because
Valens refused to confirm the proceedings. of its being occupied by Eulalius with a very
In 367 Valens, as he was setting out for the small number of presbyters and an excited
Gothic war, was induced by his wife to receive mob they were the great majority of the
;

baptism from Eudoxius. In the same year clergy, supported by the better part of the
he issued, doubtless under the advice of laity amid general acclamation they had
;

Eudoxius, an order that such bishops as had elected Boniface, in whose ordination 70
been banished by Constantius and had re- priests and 9 bishops of divers provinces had
turned under Julian should again be exiled. concurred ;whereas the bp. of Ostia, a sick
The years during which Eudoxius and old man almost at the point of death, had been
Valens acted together were troubled by por- brought against his will to assist in the ordina-
tents, which many attributed to the anger of tion of Boniface's rival.
Heaven at the cruelty of Valens in banishing Having received this counter-statement,
bishops who would not admit Eudoxius Honorius writes to Symmachus (Jan. 15),
to
their communion. revoking his former edict
Eudoxius died in 370. He commanding the ;

well deserves the character given him by attendance at Ravenna (Feb. 8) of Boniface
Baronius, " the worst of all the Arians." Soz. and Eulalius, with their respective supporters,
H. E. iv. 26 Socr. H. E. ii. iq, 37, 40, 43
;
before a synod. ;

Theoph. Chronogr. ^ 38 Niceph. Callist.


;
The documents shew that the members of
H. E. xi. 4 Theod. H. E. ii. 25
; Haer. this synod were divided, and unable to come
;

Fab. iv. 3 Epiph. de Haeres. Ixxiii. 2 Athan. to a decision before Easter (Mar. 30), when
; ;

ad Solit. in Pair. Gk. xxvi. 572, 219, 589, 274, custom required a bishop to celebrate in Rome.
580, 713, 601 Hilarius, de Synod., Pair. Lat. Honorius therefore decided to refer the case
;

X. 471, etc. Liber contr. Const. Imp. §§ 665, after Easter to a fuller synod, and commis-
;

680, 573, etc. [w.M.s.] sioned Achilleus bp. of Spoleto to celebrate


EulaliUS (1), an antipope, elected and or- Easter in Rome, forbidding both claimants to
dained as bp. of Rome after the death of be present there. He exacts obedience in a
Zosimus at the close of 418, in opposition to high tone of authority, and threatens with
Boniface I., who was finally established in the summary punishment all disturbers of the
see, Eulalius being expelled from Rome by peace. The synod was to be held at Spoletura
the emperor Honorius in April 419. The on June 13. Honorius sent private letters to
official letters which passed have been pre- several of the more important prelates, e.g.
served in the Vatican, and are quoted at length Paulinus of Nola, Augustine, and Aurelius of
by Baronius [A. E. ann. 418, Ixxix. 419, ii.- Carthage, and circular letters to the bishops
xxxii.). They throw light on the conflicts of Africa and Gaul. The proposed assembly,
attending the election of bishops, and on the however, never took place. Eulalius and his
powers exercised by the emperors in connexion party, disregarding the imperial orders, en-
therewith. First we have a letter (Dec. 29, tered Rome at mid-day. Mar. 18, and came
418) to Honorius at Ravenna from Svmmachus into violent collision with Achilleus and his
the Praefectus Urbis, stating that, after he supporters, Symmachus and the Vicarius
310 EULOGIUS EUNOMIUS
Urbis narrowly escaping with their lives. Eunomius (3) of Cappadocia, bp. of Cyzicus
Thereupon the emperor ordered (Mar. 25) (360-364) after the expulsion of Eleusius. As
Eulalius to be immediately expelled from the the pupil and secretary of Aetius, he formu-
city. Eulalius refused to comply, and took lated his master's system with a preciseness
violent possession of the Lateran church, but which stamped the name of Eunomians instead
was eventually dislodged thence and expelled of that of Aetians on the Anomoean heretics.
from Rome, an imperial edict (Apr. 3) exclud- He was distinguished by " a faculty of subtle
"
ing him from the see and confirming Boniface disputation and hard mechanical reasoning
as bp. of Rome. The latter was welcomed as (Newman, Arians, c. iv. § 4), which subjected
bishop by the whole population with joy and the Christian verities to strict logical pro-
gratitude to the emperor. cesses, and rejected every doctrine that could
Eulalius retired to Antium, near Rome, not be shewn to be consistent with human
expecting the death of Boniface, who fell sick reason. Neander further describes him as
after his accession, but this hope failing, he the decided enemy of asceticism, and of the
made no further attempt to recover the see, growing disposition to worship saints and

though invited to do so by his partisans in relics in fact, the " Rationalist " of the 4th
Rome on the death of Boniface in 423. Ac- cent. (Ch. Hist. iv. p. 78, Clark's trans.).
cording to the Liber Pontificalis, he afterwards The name of his birthplace is given as
became bp. of Nepete. Dacora by Sozomen and Philostorgius, and as
From this account, extracted from contem- Oltiseris by Gregory Nyssen, who correctly
porary documents, the following facts are places it on the confines of Cappadocia and
evident. First, that with the ancient custom Galatia (Soz. H. E. vii. 17 Philost. H. E. x.
;

of election of a new bishop by the clergy, with 6, xi. 5). Eunomius came of an honest, in-
the assent of the laity, and confirmation by dustrious stock. His father, an unpretending,"
provincial bishops, there was no desire on the hard-working man, supported his family by
part of the civil power to interfere. Secondly, the produce of his land and by teaching a few
that elections had come to be conducted in an neighbours' children in the winter evenings
irregular and tumultuous manner, giving rise (Greg. Nys. in Ewiom. i. p. 291). Eunomius
[Damasus] to violent conflicts, with blood- inherited his father's independent spirit. He
shed even in the churches. Thirdly, that it learnt shorthand, and became amanuensis to
was the necessity of restoring order, and a kinsman and tutor to his children. The
adjudicating between rival claims, that led to country becoming distasteful to him, he went
the interposition of the emperor. Fourthly, to Constantinople, hoping to study rhetoric.
that in this case the emperor did not insist Gregory Nyssen, who endeavours to blacken
on a right to decide on the validity of either his character as much as possible, hints
election without first submitting the question that his life there was not very reputable, but
to an episcopal synod. Fifthly, eventually, specifies no charges. It was reported that he
serious provocation being given, he settled the worked as a tailor, making clothes and girdles.
question on his own authority, without the Before very long he returned to Cappadocia.
sanction of a synod or regard to the canoni- The fame of Aetius, then teaching at Alex-
city of the original election. A statement in andria, reaching Eunomius, he proceeded
the Liber Pontificalis that Eulalius was de- thither c. 356, and placed himself under his in-
posed by a synod of 252 bishops is inconsistent struction, acting also as his amanuensis (Socr.
with the contemporary evidence given above, H. E. ii. 35, iv. 7 Soz. H. E. vi. 27 Philost.
and, as such, Baronius rejects it. —
[j.b y.] ;
; ;

H. E. iii. 20 Greg. Nys. in Ennom. i. p. 290).


EuIogiUS (4), bp. of Edessa. When a pres- He accompanied Aetius to Antioch at the
byter there he suffered in the persecution by beginning of 358, to attend the Arian council
Valens. Barses the bishop having been summoned by Eudoxius, who had through
deposed and exiled, the orthodox refused to court favour succeeded to the see of Antioch.
communicate with an Arian prelate, intruded The bold front displayed by the Arians at
into the see. Modestus the prefect com- this council, and the favour shewn to the
manded the leading ecclesiastics to obey the flagrant blasphemies of Aetius and Eunomius,
emperor and communicate with the new who did not scruple to assert the absolute
prelate. The whole body, led by Eulogius, unlikeness {avd/jLoiov) of the Son to the
offered so firm a resistance that Modestus Father, excited the strong opposition of the
sentenced them, 80 in number, to transporta- semi-Arian party, of which George of Laodi-
tion to Thrace. The confessors received so cea, Basil of Ancyra, and Macedonius of
much honour there that Valens relegated Constantinople, were the highly respectable
them, two and two, to distant localities, leaders. Under colour of the dedication of a
Eulogius with a presbyter Protogenes being church, a council was speedily held by them at
sent to Antinous in the Thebaid. Though Ancyra at which the Anomoean doctrines and
there was a Catholic bishop here the popu- their authors were condemned. A synodical
lation was almost entirely pagan, and the letter was sent to the emperor denouncing the
two presbyters commenced missionary work teaching of Eunomius and his master and
among them. On the cessation of the perse- charging the latter with being privy to the
cution Eulogius and Protogenes returned to conspiracy of Gallus (Philost. H. E. iv. 8).
Edessa, where, Barses being dead, Eulogius These proceedings struck dismay into the
was consecrated bishop by Eusebius of Samo- Arian clique at Antioch, and Eunomius, now
sata (Theod. //. £. iv. 18, v. 4). He attended a deacon, was sent to Constantinople as their
the councils held at Rome in 369 (Labbe, ii. advocate. But, apprehended in Asia Minor
894), Antioch in 379, and Constantinople in by some imperial officers, he was banished by
381 (ib. 955)- See Soz. vi. 34; and Migne's the emperor's orders to Midaeus or Migde in
note 61, Patr. Gk. Ixvii. 1394. [e-v.] Phrygia Aetius to Pepuza. Eudoxius found
;
EUNOMIUS EUNOMIUS 311
it prudent to retire to his native Armenia till fore permitted to retire to his paternal estate
the storm had blown over (Greg. Nys. tb. p. at Dacora, where he died in extreme old age
291), but found means to reinstate himself in soon after a.d. 392, when, according to Jerome
the emperor's favour, and at the close of 359 {Vir. Ilhist. c. 120), he was still living, and
was chosen successor of Macedonius in the writing much against the church. His body
imperial see. Constantius had the utmost was buried there, but transferred to Tyana,
abhorrence of the Anomoeans and their teach- by order of Eutropius, c. 396, and there care-
ing. Aetius was therefore sacrificed by the
Arians as a scapegoat, while Eunomius was
fully guarded by the monks —to prevent its
being carried by his adherents to Constanti-
persuaded to separate himself reluctantly from nople and buried beside his master Aetius, to
his old teacher and conceal his heterodoxy, whom he had himself given a splendid funeral
that he might secure a position of influence (Soz. H. E. vii. 17 Philost. H. E. ix. 6. xi. 5).
;

from which to secretly disseminate his views. Eunomianism, a cold, logical system, lacked
Eudoxius procured for him from the emperor elements of vitality, and notwithstanding its
the bishopric of Cyzicus, vacant by the de- popularity at first, did not long survive its
position of the semi- Arian Eleusius but after authors.
; In the following century, when
a while, weary of dissimulation, he began to Theodoret wrote, the body had dwindled to
propound his doctrines, at first privately, and a scanty remnant, compelled to conceal them-
then in public assemblies. Complaints of his selves and hold their meetings in such obscure
heterodoxy were laid before Eudoxius, who, corners that they had gained the name of
forced by Constantius, summoned Eunomius "Troglodytes" (Theod. Haer. Fab. iv. 3).
before a council of bishops at Constantinople, St. Augustine remarked that in his time the
but sent him a secret message counselling few Anomoeans existing were all in the East
flight. Eunomius, not appearing, was con- and that there were none in Africa (Aug. de
demned in his absence, deposed, and banished Past. Cur. c. 8, p. 278).
(Theod. Haer. Fab. iv. 3 ; H. E. ii. 29; Phil- Eunomius endeavoured to develop Arianism
ost. H. E. vi. i). On this he broke altogether as a formal doctrinal system starting with
;

with his former associates, and headed a party the conception of God as the absolute simple
of his own, called after him Eunomians, pro- Being, of Whom neither self-communication
fessing the extreme Anomoean doctrines of nor generation can be predicated. His es-
the general comprehensibleness of the Divine sence is in this, that He is what He is of Him-
Essence, and the absolute unlikeness of the self alone, underived, unbegotten and as —
Son to the Father. The accession of Julian being the only unbegotten One, the Father,
in 361 recalled Eunomius and Aetius among in the strict sense of Deity, is alone God and ;

the other bishops banished by Constantius. as He is unbegotten, inasmuch as begetting


They both settled in Constantinople during necessarily involves the division and impar-
the reigns of Julian and his successor Jovian tation of being, so it is impossible for Him to
(Philost. H. E. vi. 7, vii. 6). The growing beget. If that which was begotten shared in
popularity of Eunomianism at Constantinople the 0e6n?s of the Deity, God would not be
caused jealousy in Eudoxius, who took advan- the absolute unbegotten One, but would be
tage of the commotions caused by the rebel- divided into a begotten and an unbegotten
lion of Procopius on the accession of Valens God. A communication of the essence of
in 364 to expel Eunomius and Aetius from the God, such as that involved in the idea of
city. Eunomius retired to his country house generation, would transfer to the Absolute
near Chalcedon. Procopius having also taken Deity the notions of time and sense. An
refuge there in Eunomius's absence, Euno- eternal generation was to Eunomius a thing
mius was accused of favouring his designs, and absolutely inconceivable. A begetting, a
was in danger of being capitally condemned. bringing forth, could not be imagined as with-
Sentence of banishment to Mauritania was out beginning and end. The generation of
actually passed upon him, a.d. 367. But on the Son of God must therefore have had its
his way thither, passing through Mursa, the beginning, as it must have had its termination,
Arian bishop Valens, by personal applica- at a definite point of time. It is, therefore,
tion to the emperor Valens, obtained the repeal incompatible with the predicate of eternity.
of his sentence {tb. iv. 4-8). He was, the If that can be rightly asserted of the Son, He
same year, again sentenced to banishment by must equally, with the Father, be unbegotten.
Modestus, the prefect of the Praetorian This denial of the eternal generation of the
guards, as a disturber of the pubhc peace (tb. Son involved also the denial of the likeness
ix. 11). But he was again at Constantinople, of His essence to that of the Father, from
or at least at Chalcedon, early in the reign of which the designation of the party, "_ Ano-
Theodosius, a.d. 379, to whom in 383 he, with moean," was derived. That which is be-
other bishops, presented a confession of faith gotten, he asserted, cannot possibly resemble
which is still extant. The next year Theodosius, the essence of that which is unbegotten ;

finding some officers of the court infected with hence, equality of essence, " Homoousian,"
Eunomian views, expelled them from the or even similarity of essence, " Homoiousian,"
palace, and havingseized Eunomius at Chalce- is untenable. Were the begotten to resemble
don, banished him to Halmyris in Moesia, on the unbegotten in its essence, it must cease
the Danube. Halmyris being captured by to be unbegotten. Were the Father and the
the Goths, who had crossed the frozen river, Son equal, the Son must also be unbegotten,
Eunomius was transported to Caesarea in a consequence utterly destructive of the fun-
Cappadocia. The fact that he had attacked damental doctrine of generation and subordin-
their late venerated bishop, Basil the Great, ation. Such generation, moreover, Eunomius
in his writings, made him so unpopular there held to be essentially impossible. If then,
that his life was hardly safe. He was there- according to the teaching of the church, the
;

312 EUNOMIUS EUNOMIUS


Son, Who is begotten, were of the same essence obtain eternal life. Eunomius's poor and low
as the Father Who begets, there must be both idea of the knowledge of God placed it merely
an unbegotten and a begotten element in in a formal illumination of the understanding
God. The essence of the Father and of the and a theoretical knowledge of God and
Son must therefore be absolutely dissimilar. spiritual truth, instead of in that fellowship
And as Their essence, so also is Their knowledge with God as made known to us in Christ and
of Themselves different. Each knows Himself that knowledge which comes from love, which
as He is, and not as the other. The one knows the church has ever held to be the true life
Himself as unbegotten, the other as begotten. of the soul. In harmony with this formal,
Since, therefore, the Son did not share in any intellectual idea of knowledge, as the source
way the essence of the Father, what is His of Christian life, Eunomius assigned a lower
relation to God, and to what does He owe His place to the sacraments than to the teaching
origin ? Eunomius's answer lay in a dis- of the word, depreciating the liturgical, as
tinction between the essence (ovaia) and the compared with the doctrinal, element of
energy (ifepyeia) of God. Neither movement Christianity. As quoted by Gregory Nyssen,
nor self-communication being predicable of he asserted that "the essence of Christianity
the Divine Essence, it is to the Divine Energy, did not depend for its ratification on sacred
conceived as separable from the Be6r7;s, that terms, on the special virtue of customs and
"
we must ascribe the calling into existence out mystic symbols, but on accuracy of doctrine
of nothing of all that is. In virtue of this (Greg. N3's. in Eunotn. p. 704). For fuller
evepyela only can God be called Father, as it statements of the doctrinal system of Euno-
is by this that all that is, besides Himself, has mius, see Dorner, Doctrine of the Person of
come into being. Of these creations of the Christ, div. i. vol. ii. pp. 264 ff., Clark's trans.
Divine Energy the Son or Logos holds the first Neander, Ch. Hist. vol. iv. pp. 77 ff., Clark's
place, as the instrumental creator of the world. trans. ; Herzog, Real-Encycl. " Eunomius und
In this relation likeness to the Father is pre- Eunomianer " (from which works the fore-
dicable of the Son. The Son may in this sense going account has been derived) ;
Klose,
be regarded as the express image and likeness Geschichie und Lehre des Eunomius (1833) ;
of the fvfpytla of the Father, as He conferred Bauer, Dreieinigkeit, i. pp. 365-387 ; Meyer,
on Him divine dignity in the power of creation. Trinitdtslehre, pp. 175 ff. ; Lange, Ariantsmus
This made the immeasurable difference between in seiner weiteren Entwickelung.
the Son and all other created beings. He was Eunomius, as a writer, was more copious
produced by the Father, as an alone Being, than elegant. Photius speaks very depre-
the first or most perfect of all Beings, to be, ciatingly of his studied obscurity, the weakness
by His will, His instrument in the creation of of his arguments, and his logical power. Soc-
ail other existences. God called Him into rates estimates his style no less unfavourably
being immediately, but all other creatures {H. E. iv. 7). Notwithstanding these alleged
mediately through Him. This teaching in- defects, his writings, which Rufinus states
troduced a dualism into the essence of God were very numerous and directed against the
Himself, when it drew a distinction between Christian faith {H. E. i. 25), were much es-

His essence and His will the one being in- teemed by his followers, who, according to
finite and absolute, and the other relative and Jerome, valued their authority more highly
limited to finite objects. On the ground of than that of the Gospels (Hieron. adv. Vigil.
this dualism Eunomius is charged by Gregory t. ii. p. 123). The bold blasphemies in these
Nyssen with Manicheism. Eunomius regarded books caused their destruction. Successive
the Paraclete as sharing in the Divine nature in imperial edicts, one of Arcadius, dated not
a still more secondary and derived sense, as more than four years after his death a.d. 398
no more than the highest and noblest produc- {Cod. Theod. t. vi. p. 152 lib. xvi. 34), com-
;

tion of the Only-begotten Son, given to be manded that his books should be burnt, and
the source of all light and sanctification. made the possession of any of his writings a
The entire want of spiritual depth and life capital crime. Little of his writing remains,
in Eunomius is shewn by his maintaining that save some few fragments preserved in the
the Divine nature is perfectly comprehensible works of his theological adversaries. His
by the human intellect, and charging those Exposition of Faith and his Apologeticus are
who denied this with an utter ignorance of the the only pieces extant of any length.
first principles of Christianity. He accused (i) eKdeaii vlareus, Fidet libellus. A con-
them of preaching an unknown God. and even fession of faith presented to Theodosius, a.d.
denied their right to be called Christians at all, 383 (Socr. H. E. vii. 12), first printed by
since without knowledge of God there could Valesius in his notes to Socrates, afterwards
be no Christianity ; while he denied to those by Baluze in Conciliorum A^ov. Collect, i. 89,
who did not hold his views as to the nature of and in Fabricius, Biblioth. Graeca, v. 23.
God and the generation of the Son the pos- (2) Apologeticus, in 28 sections. This is his
session of any true knowledge of the Divine most famous work, in which, with much
Being. He held that Christ had been sent to subtlety, he seeks to refute the Nicene doc-
lead other creatures up to God, the primal trine of the Trinity, especially the co-eternal
source of all existence, as a Being external to and consubstantial divinity of Christ. Basil
Himself, and that believers should not stop at the Great thought the book worth an
the generation of the Son, but having followed elaborate refutation, in five books, adversus
Him as far as He was able to lead them, should Eunotnium (Migne, Patr. Gk. xxx. 835).
soar above Him, as above all created beings, An English trans, was pub. by Whiston in
whether material or spiritual, to God Himself, his Eunomianismus Redivivus (Lond. 171 1,
the One Absolute Being, as their final aim, 8vo).
that in the knowledge of Him they might Cave, HisU Lit. \. p, 219; Fafe. Bihl. Graeca,
EUPHEMITAE EUPHEMIUS 313

viii. p. 261; Phot. Cod. 137, 138; Tillem. which met in some church of Constantinople.
Mem. Eccl. vi. 501 ff. [e.v.] The patriarch appeared before the conventicle
Euphemitae, also known as Messalians, with menacing gestures and drove them from
" praying people," and therefore reckoned by the spot. " If you must frequent the church,"
Epiphanius [Haer. 80) as predecessors of the he exclaimed, " agree with her or else no
!

Christian sect so called. Epiphanius, our sole more enter into her gates to pervert men more
informant, tells us that they were neither simple than yourself." Henceforth, says the
Christians, Jews, nor Samaritans, but heathen, annalist, Anastasius kept quiet, for the sake
believing in a plurality of gods, but ofifering of the glory that he coveted. As the emperor
worship only to one whom they called the Zeno died in 491, this must have occurred
Almighty. They built oratories, some of within two years after the consecration of
which exactly resembled Christian churches ;
Euphemius, and it witnesses alike to his
in these they met at evening and early morn, intrepidity and his influence. After the
with many lights, to join in hymns and prayer. death of Zeno, the empress Ariadne procured
We learn from Epiphanius with some surprise the election of Anastasius, on the understand-
that some of the magistrates put several of ing that he was to marry her. The patriarch
these people to death for perversion of the openly called him a heretic, unworthy of reign-
truth and unwarranted imitation of church ing over Christians, and refused to crown him,
customs, and that in particular Lupicianus, despite the entreaties of the empress and the
having thus punished some of them, gave senate, until Anastasius would give a written
occasion to a new error, for they buried the profession of his creed, promise under his hand
bodies, held services at the spot, and called to keep the Catholic faith intact, make no
themselves martyriani. Epiphanius also innovation in the church, and follow as his
charges a section of the Euphemites with rule of belief the decrees of Chalcedon. Anas-
calling themselves Sataniani and worshipping tasius gave the writing under most solemn
Satan, thinking that by such service they oaths, and Euphemius put it in charge of the
might disarm his hostility. It does not ap- saintly Macedonius, chancellor and treasurer
pear that Epiphanius means to assert that of the church of Constantinople, to be stored
the Christian Euchites were historically de- in the archives of the cathedral (Evagr. iii. 32).
rived from these heathen Euphemites, but At the end of 491, or on Feb. 25, 492, pope
merely that there was a general resemblance Felix died. His successor Gelasius immediate-
of practices between them. Tillem ont conjec- ly announced his elevation to the emperor
tured (viii. 529) that the Euphemites of Epi- Anastasius, but took no notice of Euphemius,
phaniusmight be identical with the Hypsistarii who had written at once to express his con-
of Greg. Naz., or less probably with the gratulations, and his desire for peace and for
CoELicoLAE of Africa. [Euchites.] [g.s.] the reunion of the churches. Not obtaining
Euphemlus (4), 3rd patriarch of Constanti- an answer, he wrote a second time. Neither
nople, succeeding Fravitta and followed by letter remains, but the reply of Gelasius shews
Macedonius II. He ruled six years and three that Euphemius, in congratulating the Roman
months, a.d. 489-496, and died in 515. Theo- church on its pontiff, added that he himself
phanes calls him Euthymius. He was a pres- was not sufficiently his own master to do what
byter of Constantinople, administrator of a he wished ; that the people of Constantinople
hospital for the poor at Neapolis, untinged would never agree to disgrace the memory of
with any suspicion of Eutychian leanings, and their late patriarch Acacius that if that were
;

is described as learned and very virtuous. necessary, the pope had better write to the
Finding that Peter Mongus, the patriarch of people about it himself, and send someone
Alexandria, anathematized the council of to try and persuade them ; that Acacius had
Chalcedon, he was so indignant that before he never said anything against the faith, and that
took his seat on the patriarchal throne he if he was in communion with Mongus, it was
solemnly separated from all communion with when Mongus had given a satisfactory account
him, and with his own hands effaced his name of his creed. Euphemius subjoined his own
from the diptychs, placing in its stead that of confession, rejecting Eutyches and accepting
Felix III. of Rome. For a year the strife Chalcedon. It seems also that Euphemius
between Mongus and Euphemius was bitter. spoke of those who had been baptized and
Each summoned councils against the other ;
ordained by Acacius since the sentence pro-
Euphemius even thought of persuading a nounced against him at Rome, and pointed
council to depose Mongus but at the end of
;
out how embarrassing it would be if the
Oct. 490 Mongus died. memory of Acacius must be condemned
To pope Felix the patriarch sent letters, as (Ceillier, x. 486). Replying to these tem-
was usual, to announce his election, but re- perate counsels, Gelasius allows that in other
ceived the reply that he might be admitted circumstances he would have written to an-
as a private member of the church Catholic, nounce his election, but sourly observes that
but could not be received in communion as a the custom existed only among those bishops
bishop, because he had not removed from who were united in communion, and was not
the diptychs the names of his predecessors, to be extended to those who, like Euphemius,
Acacius and Fravitta. preferred a strange alliance to that of St.
At the death (probably in 489) of Daniel the Peter. He allows the necessity of gentleness
Stylite on the pillar where he had lived for and tenderness, but remarks that there is no
33 years, Euphemius came with others to the need to throw yourself into the ditch when
foot of the pillar to attend his last moments. you are helping others out. As a mark of
Anastasius, the future emperor, then an aged condescension he willingly grants the canonical
officer of the emperor Zeno, held Eutychian remedy to all who had been baptized and or-
views, and, according to Suidas, formed a sect dained by Acacius. Can Euphemius possibly
314 EUPHEMIUS EUPREPIUS
wish him to allow the names of condemned drew his sword on Euphemius at the door of the
heretics and their successors to be recited in sacristy, but was struck down by an attendant.
the sacred diptychs ? Euphemius professed Anastasius sought other means to get rid of
to reject Eutyches let him reject also those
;
Euphemius. Theodorus speaks of the vio-
who have communicated with the successors lence with which he demanded back the pro-
of Eutyches. Was it not even worse for fession of faith on which his coronation had
Acacius to know the truth and yet communi- depended (Theod. Lect. ii. 8, 572 seq. in Patr.
cate with its enemies ? The condemnation of Gk. Ixxxvi.). He assembled the bishops who
Acacius was ipso facto according to the decrees were in the capital and preferred charges
of ancient councils. If Peter Mongus did against their metropolitan, whom they ob-
purge himself, why did not Euphemius send sequiously declared excommunicated and de-
proofs of it ? He is much vexed with Euphe- posed. The people loyally refused to surrender
mius for saying that he is constrained to do him, but had soon to yield to the emperor.
things which he does not wish no bishop
; Meanwhile Euphemius, fearing for his life,
should talk so about that truth for which retired to the baptistery, and refused to go out
he ought to lay down his life. He refuses until Macedonius had promised on the word
to send a mission to Constantinople, for it of the emperor that no violence should be done
is the pastor's duty to convince his own him when they conducted him to exile. With
flock. At the tribunal of Jesus Christ it will a proper feeling of respect for the fallen great-
be seen which of the two is bitter and hard. ness and unconquerable dignity of his prede-
The high spirit of the orthodox patriarch was cessor, Macedonius, on coming to find him in
fired by
this dictatorial interference. He even the baptistery, made the attendant deacon
thought of summoning the pope himself to take off the newly-given pallium and clothed
account and as Gelasius was certainly even
; himself in the dress of a simple presbyter,
more suspicious of the emperor Anastasius, " not daring to wear " his insignia before their
who was, despite the recantation which canonical owner. After some conversation,
Euphemius had enforced, a real Eutychian Macedonius (himself to follow Euphemius to
at heart, it is very likely that, as Baronius the very same place of exile under the same
asserts, the patriarch did not attempt to emperor) handed to him the proceeds of a loan
conceal the pope's antipathy to the emperor. he had raised for his expenses. Euphemius
Nothing cooled the zeal of Euphemius for was taken to Eucaites in 495, the fifth year of
the council of Chalcedon. Anastasius har- Anastasius. His death occurred 20 years
boured designs against its supporters the ;
later at Ancyra, whither, it is thought, the
patriarch gathered together the bishops who Hunnish invasion had made him retire.
were at Constantinople, and invited them to Elias, metropolitan of Jerusalem, himself
confirm its decrees. According to Theophanes afterwards expelled from his see by Anasta-
and Victor of Tunis, this occurred in 492 (Vict. sius, stood stoutly by Euphemius at the time
Tun. Chron. p. 5) but in Mansi (vii. 1180)
; of his exile, declaring against the legality of
the event is placed at the beginning of the his sentence (Cyrillus, Vita S. Sabae, c. 69,
patriarchate of Euphemius, and the decrees apud Sur. t. vi.). In the East Euphemius
are said to have been sent by the bishops to was always honoured as the defender of the
pope Felix III. Various jars shewed the Catholic faith and of Chalcedon, and as a man
continued rupture with Rome. Theodoric of the highest holiness and orthodoxy. Great
had become master of and in 493 sent
Italy, efforts were made at the fifth general council
Faustus and Irenaeus emperor Anas-
to the to get his name put solemnly back in the
tasius to ask to peace. During their sojourn diptychs (Mansi, viii. 1061 e). The authori-
at Constantinople the envoys received com- ties for his Life are, Marcel. Chron. a.d. 491-
plaints from the Greeks against the Roman 495 in Patr. Lat. li. p. 933 Theod. Lect.
;

church, which they reported to the pope. Eccl. Hist. ii. 6-15 in Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi. pt. i.
Euphemius urged that the condemnation of 185-189; Theoph. Chronog. a.d. 481-489 in
Acacius by one prelate only was invalid; Patr. Gk. cviii. 324-337; St. Niceph. Constant.
to excommunicate a metropolitan of Con- Chronog. Brev. 45 in Patr. Gk. c. p. 1046 ;

stantinople a general council was necessary Baronius, a.d. 489-493 Gelas. Pap. Ep. et
;

[ib. viii. 16). Now occurred that imprudence Decret. in Patr. Lat. lix. 13.
i. [w.m.s.]
which unhappily cost Euphemius his throne. Euprepius (4), bp. of Bizya in Thrace ; one
Anastasius, tired of war against the Isaurians, of 68 bishops who demanded that the opening
was seeking an honourable way of stopping of the council of Ephesus should be postponed
it. He asked Euphemius in confidence to beg until the arrival of John of Antioch. He
the bishops at Constantinople (there were signed on this occasion also for Fritilas bp.
always bishops coming and going to and from of Heraclea (Synod, adv. Tragoed. cap. 7, in
the metropolis) to pray for peace and thus Theod. 0pp. t. v. in Patr. Gk. Ixxxiv. 591).
furnish him with an opportunity of entering He nevertheless attended the council when it
on negotiations. Euphemius betrayed the opened, signed the sentence against Nestorius
secret to John the patrician, father-in-law of and the " decretum de fide " (Mansi, iv.
•Athenodorus, one of the chiefs of the Isaurians. 1225 c, 1364 e). Euprepius is chiefly of
John hurried to the emperor to inform him interest from the memorial termed " Supplex
of the patriarch's indiscretion. Anastasius libellus," which he and Cyril, bp. of Coele in
was deeply offended, and thenceforth never the same province, jointly addressed to the
ceased to persecute his old opponent. He fathers of the council (ib. 1478), stating that
accused him of helping the Isaurians against by an ancient custom in the European pro-
him, and of corresponding with them (Theoph. vinces a bishop sometimes had more bishoprics
Chronog. a.d. 488). An assassin, either by than one under his charge that Euprepius
;

.\nastasius's own order or to gain his favour, was then administering the see of Arcadiopolis
EURIC EURIC 315

in addition to that of Bizya, while Cyril was I Glycerins, fearful for Italy, and
hoping to
acting similarly. The council was requested |
had in 473
purchase a renewal of the foedus,
to rule that this custom might not be dis formally ceded the country to Euric, a com-
turbed, and that Fritilas, bp. of Heraclea, pact rejected by Ecdicius and Sidonius and
;

might be forbidden to appoint bishops in those now Nepos, for the same reasons, sent legates
cities of Thrace which were then without to Euric, amongst them the famous Epipha-
bishops of their own. The prayer was granted, nius of Pavia (Ennod. VitaS. Epiph. AA. SS.
and it was decreed that the custom of the Jan. ii. p. 369), to treat for peace. Euric
cities in question should be respected (Le persisted in the demand for Auvergne, and
Quien, Or. Chr. i. 1136, 1145). [e-v.] accordingly, in return for a renewal of the
Euric (1) {Evarich, Evorich, Euthorik, foedus (" fidelibus animis foederabuntur,"
Evarix), king of the Visigothic kingdom of Sid. Apoll. ix. 5), Ecdicius and Sidonius were
Toulouse from 466 to 484, and from 477 on- ordered to submit, and the district was given
wards master of almost the whole of Spain. over to the revenge of the Goths. Ecdicius
Under him the Visigoth power reached its fled to the Burgundians, while Sidonius (see
In the reign of his successor it Ep. vii. 7, for his invectives against the peace
highest point.
was curtailed by the Franks, while in that of — " Pudeat vos hujus foederis, nee utilis nee
his father, Theodoric or Theodored I. {d. 451) decori "), having vainly attempted to make
!

and his brothers, Thorismund and Theodoric favourable terms for the Catholics with Euric,
II., the country occupied by the Goths had was banished to Livia, near Narbonne (Sid.
still been reckoned as an integral part of the Apoll. viii. 3). By the influence of Euric's
empire (" auxiliaminireipublicae," says Aetius minister, Leo, he was released after a year's
to the Goths before the battle of Chalons, imprisonment, and appeared at the Gothic
" cujus membrum tenetis," Jord. c. 36), while court at Bordeaux, where, during a stay of
the Gothic state had found it necessary to two months, he succeeded in obtaining only
submit again and again to the foedus with one audience of the king, so great was the
Rome. " Euric, therefore, king of the Visi- crowd of ambassadors, and the pressure of
goths," says Jord. c. 45, " seeing the frequent important business awaiting the decision of
changes of the Roman princes " (and the Euric and his minister. In Epp. viii. 9, Sidon-
weakness of the Roman kingdom, " Romani ius has left us a brilliant picture of the Gothic
regni vacillationem," as he says in c. 46), king, surrounded by barbarian envoys, Roman
" attempted to occupy the Gauls in his own legates, and even Persian ambassadors. The
right, suo jure.'' And again, " Totas His- Gothic territory in Gaul was now bounded by
panias Galliasque sibi jam proprio jure tenens." the Loire, the Rhone, and the two seas, while
Thus the pretence of the foedus was finally set in Spain a great many towns were already
aside, and in the interval between the fall of held by Gothic garrisons. Euric's troops
the western empire and the rise of the Ostro- easily overran the whole country at their next
goths and Franks, Euric appears as the most great advance. In 475 came the fall of Nepos
powerful sovereign of the West (Dahn, v. 100). and Augustulus, and the suspension of the
In 466, the year of his accession, Euric sent empire of the West. The news aroused all
legates to the Eastern emperor Leo, perhaps the barbarian races in Gaul and Spain.
with a last thought of renewing the foedus. Euric, with an Ostrogothic reinforcement
The negotiations came to nothing, and in 4.67 under Widimer, crossed the Pyrenees in
the Goths and Vandals made a defensive 477, took Pampelona and Saragossa, and
league against Leo, Anthemius, and Rikimir, annihilated the resistance of the Roman
who were about to attack Genseric. Beside nobility in Tarraconensis. By 478 the
his Vandalic auxiliaries in Gaul, Euric also had whole peninsula had fallen to the Goths,
the support of a certain party among the except a mountainous strip in the N.W.,
provincials themselves, as is shewn by the relinquished probably by treaty to the Suevi.
evidence given at the trial of Arvandus, pre- By this complete conquest of the peninsula,
fect of the Gauls, for treasonable correspond- " a place of refuge was provided for the Goths
ence with the Goths (Sidon. Apoll. i. 7), and . .destined in the following generation to
.

in 468 he attacked the newly made Western fall back before the young and all-subduing
emperor Anthemius simultaneously in Gaul power of the Franks, called to a greater work
and Spain, with the result that by 474 the than they " (Dahn, Konige der Germanen, v.
Gothic dominion in Gaul would have extended 98). Fresh successes in Gaul followed close
from the Atlantic to the Rhone and Mediter- upon the Spanish campaign. Aries was taken,
ranean, and from the Pyrenees to the Loire, 480, Marseilles, 481, and ultimately the whole

but for one obstacle the vigorous defence of of Provence up to the Maritime Alps (Proc.
Auvergne by Ecdicius, son of the emperor b. G. i. I, quoted by Dahn, I.e.), and the exiled
Avitus, and the famous bp. of Clermont, Nepos, indeed, seems to have formally sur-
Sidonius ApoUinaris (Sid. Apoll. vii. i). The rendered almost the whole of southern Roman
history of this dramatic struggle, preserved in Gaul to Euric. Euric was now sovereign from
the letters of Sidonius, throws valuable light the Loire to the Straits of Gibraltar, and
on the politics of the 5th cent. It is the last appears as the protector of the neighbouring
desperate effort of the provincial nobility to barbarian races against the encroaching
avoid barbarian masters, and it is a fight, too, Franks [Cass. Var. iii. 3), taking the same
of Catholicism against Arianism. But it was position towards them as Theodoric the Great
unsuccessful. After besieging Clermont in took later in the reign of Euric's son Alaric,
474, Euric withdrew into winter quarters, Theodoric's son-in-law. Euric survived the
while Sidonius and Ecdicius, in the midst of a accession of Chlodwig (Clovis) three years,
devastated country, organized fresh resistance. dying before Sept. 485.
But with the spring diplomacy intervened. Euric's Personal Character, and his Persecu-

S16 EURIC EUSEBIUS


tions of the Catholics. — His commanding gifts were the natural leaders of the Romanized
and personality cannot be doubted. Even his populations. The ecclesiastical organization
bitterestenemy, Sidonius, speaks of his cour- made the bishops specially formidable (see
age and capacity with unwilling admiration. Dahn's remarks on the Vandal king Huneric's
" Pre-eminent in war, of fiery courage and persecutions, op. cit. i. 250). Their opposition
vigorous youth," says Sidonius (" armis po- threatened the work of Euric's life, and did,
tens, acer animis, alacer annis," Ep. vii. 6), in fact, with the aid of the orthodox Franks,
" he makes but one mistake — that of suppos- destroy it in the reign of his successor. But
ing that his successes are due to the correctness the persecution has a special interest as one
of his religion, when he owes them rather to a of the earliest instances of that oppression in
stroke of earthly good fortune." Euric was the name of religion, of which the later history
much interested in religious matters and a of the Goths in conquered Spain is every-
passionate Arian, not merely apparently from where full (Dahn, v. loi). Euric, however,
political motives, though his persecution of the did not oppress the Romans as such. His
Catholic bishops was dictated by sufficient minister Leo (Sid. Apoll. viii. 3), and count
political reasons. The letter of Sidonius quoted Victorius, to whom was entrusted the govern-
above throws great light upon Euric's relation ment of Auvergne after its surrender (ib. vii.
to the Catholic church, and upon the state of 17 Greg. Tur. ii. 35), were of illustrious Roman
;

the church under his government. " It must families. It was probably by Leo's help that
be confessed," he says, " that although this Euric drew up the code of laws of which Isidore
king of the Goths is terrible because of his and others speak (Hist. Goth, apud Esp. Sagr.
power, I fear his attacks upon the Christian vi. 486); Dahn, Konige der Germanen, Vie A bth.
laws more than I dread his blows for the pp. 88-roi, see list of sources and literature,
Roman walls. The mere name of Catholic, prefixed. For the ultra-Catholic view of the
they say, curdles his countenance and heart persecution, see Gams's Kirchengesch. von
like vinegar, so that you might almost doubt Spanien, ii. i, 484. [m.a.w.]
whether he was more the king of his people Eusebius (1), succeeded Marcellus as bp. of
or of his sect. Lose no time," he adds, ad- Rome, A.D. 309 or 310. He was banished by
dressing his correspondent Basilius, bp. of Aix, Maxentius to Sicily, where he died after a
" in ascertaining the hidden weakness of the pontificate of four months (Apr. 18 to Aug.
Catholic state, that you may be able to apply 17). His body was brought back to Rome,
prompt and public remedy. Bordeaux, Peri- and buried in the cemetery of Callistus on the
gueux, Rodez, Limoges, Gabale, Eause, Bazas, Appian Way. Hardly anything was known
Comminges, Auch, and many other towns, with certainty about this bishop till the dis-
where death has cut off the bishops [" summis coveries of de Rossi in the catacombs. That
sacerdotibus ipsorum morte truncatis," a he was buried in the cemetery of Callistus
passage misunderstood later by Gregory of rested on the authority of the Liberian De-
Tours, who speaks of the execution of bishops. posit. Episc. and the Felician catalogue. But
Hist. Franc, ii. 25], and no new bishops have ancient itineraries, written by persons who
been appointed in their places mark the
. . . had visited these tombs, described his resting-
wide boundary .of spiritual ruin. The evil place as not being the papal crypt in that
grows every day with the successive deaths of cemetery, where all the popes (with two excep-
the bishops, and the heretics, both of the tions) since Pontianus had been laid, but in
present and the past, might be moved by the a separate one some distance from it. De
suffering of congregations deprived of their Rossi found this crypt, and therein discovered,
bishops, and in despair for their lost faith." in 1852 and 1856, fragments of the inscription
The churches were crumbling ;thorns filled placed by pope Damasus over the grave, and
the open doorways ; cattle browsed in the known from copies taken before the closing of
porches and on the grass round the altar. the catacombs. But it was previously uncer-
Even in town churches services were rare, and tain whether it referred to Eusebius the pope
" when a priest dies, and no episcopal bene- or to some other Eusebius. All such doubt
diction gives him a successor in that church, was now set at rest by the discovery, in the
not only the priest but the priest's office dies " crypt referred to, of 46 fragments of a slab
(" sacerdotium moritur, non sacerdos "). Not bearing a copy of the original inscription, and
only are vacancies caused by death two : of the original slab, identified by the peculiar
bishops. Crocus and Simplicius, are mentioned characters of Damasine inscriptions. The
as deposed and exiled by Euric. Finally, inscription is as follows :

Sidonius implores the aid of Basilius, the " Damasus Episcopus feci.
position of whose bishopric made him dip-
Heraclius vetuit lapsos peccata dolere
lomatically important (" per vos mala foed- Euscbiu.s miseros docuit sua crimina flere
erum currunt, per vos regni utriusque pacta Scinditur in partes populus gliscente furore
conditionesque portantur") towards obtain- Seditio caedes bellum discordia lites
ing for the Catholics from the Gothic govern- Extemplo pariter pulsi feritate tyranni
ment the right of ordaining bishops, that " so Integra cum rector servaret foedera pacis
Pertulit exilium domino sub judice laetus
we may keep our hold upon the people of I<itore Trinacrio mundum vitamque reliquit.
the Gauls, if not ex foedere, at least ex fide." Eusebio Episcopo at martyri."
Gregory of Tours in the next cent, echoed
and exaggerated the account of Sidonius, and We thus have revealed a state of things at
all succeeding Catholic writers have accused Rome of which no other record has been pre-
Euric of the same intolerant persecution of served. It would seem that, on the cessation
the church. The persecution must be looked of Diocletian's persecution, the church there
upon, to a great extent, as political. The was rent into two parties on the subject of
Catholic bishops and the provincial nobility the terms of readmission of the lapsed to
EUSEBtUS E'USEBItJS 31?
communion that one Heraclius headed a straightway,"
: etc. Before a man renounces
party who were for readmission without the the world (by a monastic vow), let him try
penitential discipline insisted on by Eusebius himself, know ;
his own soul. He who fasts
that the consequent tumults and bloodshed must fast with " tongue, eyes, hands, feet " ;

caused " the tyrant " Maxentius to interpose his whole " body, soul, and spirit " must be
and banish the leaders of both factions and ; restrained from all sinful indulgence. " Fast,
that Eusebius, dying during his exile in Sicily, as the Lord said, in cheerfulness, with sincere
thus obtained the name of martyr. It ap- love to all men. But when you have done all
pears further, from the similar Damasine this, do not think you are better than A. or B.
inscription on Marcellus, that the contest had Say you are unprofitable servants." People
begun before the accession of Eusebius, who, are not to blame wine, but those who drink
like Marcellus, had required penance from the it to excess nor riches, but the man who
;

lapsi. [Marcellus (3).] The way in which administers them ill. Abraham had riches,
the name of Heraclius occurs in the inscription but they harmed him not, etc. Some sen-
on Eusebius suggests that he may have been tences shew a true spiritual insight " What :

elected as an antipope (so Lipsius, Chronologic sort of righteousness exceeds the rest ? Love,
der romischen Bischofe). At any rate, the for without it no good comes of any other.
subject of dispute was the same as had led to What sin is worst ? All sin is dreadful, but
the first election of an antipope, viz. Novatian, none is worse than covetousness and remem-
after the Decian persecution, some 50 years brance of injuries " (Serm. On Love). He has
before ;though on the earlier occasion the humour, too, which must have told " On :

question was whether the lapsi were to be re- Sundays the herald calls people to church ;

admitted to communion at all or not, the everybody says he is sleepy, or unwell. Hark !

schismatics being on the side of severity on ; a sound of harp or pipe, a noise of dancing :

the later occasion the question was only about all hasten that way as if on wings " (Hom. on
the conditions of their readmission, the dis- the Lord's Day, Galland. viii. 253). He depicts
sentients being on the side of laxity. In both vividly the extravagance of Alexandrian
instances the church of Rome, as represented wealth ; the splendid houses glistening with
by her lawful bishops, seems to have held a marble, beds and carpets wrought with gold
consistent and judicious course, [j.b
Eusebius (5), of Alexandria, a writer of
v.] — and pearls, horses with golden bridles and
saddles, the crowds of servants of various
sermons, about whom Galland says "all is
uncertain; nothing can be affirmed on good
classes— some to attend the great man when
he rides out, some to manage his lands or his
grounds as to his age or as to his bishopric " house, building, or his kitchen, some to fan
(Bibl. Pair, viii.p. xxiii.). It isuncertain whether him at his meals, to keep the house quiet
he belongs to the 5th or the 6th cent. A com-
plete list of sermons is given by Mai, as follows
during his slumber :

the varieties of white
: bread, the pheasants, geese, peacocks, hares,
I. On Fasting. 2. On Love. 3. On the Incar- The Christian
etc., served up at his table.
ncition and its Causes. 4. On Thankfulness in should look forward to Sunday, not simply as
Sickness. 5. On Imparting Grace to him that a day of rest from labour, but as a day of
Lacks it. 6. On Sudden Death, or, Those that prayer and Communion. Let him come in
Die by Snares. 7. On New Moon, Sabbath, early morning to church for the Eucharistic
and on not Observing the Voices of Birds. 8. service (the features of it are enumerated the :

On Commemoration of Saints. 9. On Meals, psalmody, the reading of Prophets, of St. Paul,


at such festivals. lo. On the Nativity. 11. of the Gospels, the Angelic and Seraphic
On the Baptism of Christ. 12. On " Art thou hymns, the ceaseless Alleluia, the exhortations
He that should come ?" 13. Ow the Coming of of bishops and presbyters, the presence of
John into Hades, and on the Devil. 14. On Christ " on the sacred table," the " coming "
the Treason of Judas. 15. On the Devil and of the Spirit). " If thy conscience is clear,
Hades. 16. On the Lord's Day. 17. On the approach, and receive the Body and Blood of
Passion, for the Preparation Day. 18. On the the Lord. If it condemns thee in regard to
Resurrection. 19. On the Ascension. 20. On wicked deeds, decline the Communion until
the Second Advent. 21. On ''Astronomers." thou hast corrected it by repentance, but
22. On Almsgiving, and on the Rich Man and stay through the prayers [i.e. the communion
Lazarus. He adheres to the Catholic doc- service], and do not go out of the church unless
trmes of the Trinity and the Incarnation. He thou art dismissed " ; or again, " before the
uses the ordinary Eastern phrase, " Christ our dismissal." He severely blames a layman who
God," speaks of Him as Maker of the world, tastes food before the Liturgy is over, whether
as Master of the creation, as present from the
he communicates or not but denounces those ;

begmnmg with the prophets, and as the Lord who communicate after eating (as many do
of Isaiah's vision. He calls the Holy Spirit on Easter Day itself) as if guilty of a heinous
consubstantial with the Father and the Son sin. (In this case, as in regard to premature
m the sermon on Almsgiving he calls the
;

departure from church, he does not scruple to


Virgm Mother " Ever- Virgin," " Theotokos," refer to Judas.) He blames those who do not
and "our undefiled Lady." He insists on communicate when a priest, known to be of
tree will and responsibility. " God saith.
. . . bad life, is the celebrant for " God turneth ;
If you do not choose to
hear Me, I do not not away, and the bread becomes the Body."
compel you.' God could make thee good
against thy will, but what is involuntary
He reproves those who are disorderly at the
is vigil services of a saint's festival, and at day-
unrewarded. ... If He wrote it down that I break rise and cause great disturbances.
was to commit sin, and I do commit it, why Inside the church, the priest is presenting the
'
'

does He judge me ? " If a man means to supplication having set forth (irpoTeOeiKws)
. . .

please God, " God holds out a hand to him the Body and the Blood ... for the salvation
3i8 EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA
of the world while, outside, amusements go
: giving freely to all in want ;he multiplied
on." He refers to the different functions of copies of the Scriptures, which he distributed
priest, deacon, reader, chanter, and sub- gratuitously (Ens. in Hieron. c. Rufin. i. 9,
deacon (vwr)p^T7)'i) . He encourages invoca- Op. ii. 465) ; and to the sympathy of the
tion of saints. friend he united the courage of the hero. He
^^
Mai calls him a writer delightful from his had also the power of impressing his own
" ingenuitas," his "Christian ac pastoralis strong convictions on others. Hence, when
simplicitas," hisand" nativum dicendi the great trial of faith came, his house was
genus" (Patrum Nov. Biblioth. ii. 499). [w.b.] found to be not only the home of students but
Eusebius (23) of Caesarea, also known as the nursery of martyrs. To one like Eusebius,
Euseblus Pamphili. Of extant sources of our who owed his strength and his weakness alike
knowledge of Eusebius the most important are to a ready susceptibihty of impression from
the scattered notices in writers of the same or those about him, such a friendship was an
immediately succeeding ages, e.g. Athanasius, inestimable blessing. He expressed the
Jerome, Socrates, Sozomen, andTheodoret. At strength of his devotion to this friend by
a later date some valuable information is con- adopting his name, being known as " Eusebius
tained in the proceedings of the second council of Pamphilus."
of Nicaea (Labbe, Cone. viii. 1144 seq. ed. Eusebius was in middle life when the last
Colet.), and in the A ntirrhetica of the patriarch and fiercest persecution broke out. For
Nicephorus {Spicil. Solesni. i. pp. 371 seq.) like- —
nearly half a century a longer period than
wise connected with the Iconoclastic contro- at any other time since its foundation — the
versy. The primary sources of information, church had enjoyed uninterrupted peace as
however, for the career of one who was above regards attacks from without. Suddenly and
all a literary man must be sought in his own unexpectedly all was changed. The city of
works. The only edition of them which aims Caesarea became a chief centre of persecution.
at completeness is in Migne's Patr. Gk. vols. Eusebius tells how he saw the houses of prayer
xix.-xxiv. See also the standard works of Cave razed to the ground, the holy Scriptures com-
{Hist. Lit. i. pp. 175 seq.), Tillemont {Hist. Eccl. mitted to the flames in the market-places, the
vii. pp. 39 seq., 659 seq., together with scattered pastors hiding themselves, and shamefully
notices in his account of the Arians and of the jeered at when caught by their persecutors
Nicene council in vol. vi.), and Fabricius {Bibl. {H. E. viii. 2). For seven years the attacks
Graec. vii.
pp. 335 seq. ed. Harles). The continued. At Tyre also Eusebius saw several
most complete monograph is Stein's Eusebius Christians torn by wild beasts in the amphi-
Bischof von Cdsarea (Wiirzburg, 1852). There theatre {ib. 7, 8). Leaving Palestine, he visited
is a useful English trans, of the History in Egypt. In no country did the persecution
the Nicene and Post-Nicene Fathers, by' Mr. rage more fiercely. Here, in the Thebaid, they
Giffert; cf. A. C. Headlam, The Editions or perished, ten, twenty, even sixty or a hundred
MSS. of Eusebius, in Journal of Theol. at a time. Eusebius tells how he in these
Studies, 1902, iii. 93-102. parts witnessed numerous martyrdoms in a
The references in his own works will hardly single day, some by beheading, others by fire ;

allow us to place his birth much later than the executioners relieving each other by relays
A.D. 260, so that he would be nearly 80 at his and the victims eagerly pressing forward to
death. All notices of his early life are con- be tortured, clamouring for the honour of
nected with Caesarea and as it was tlien usual
; martyrdom, and receiving their sentence with
to prefer a native as bishop, everything joy and laughter {ib. 9). This visit to Egypt
favours this as the city of his birth. was apparently after the imprisonment and
Of his parentage and relationships absolute- martyrdom of Pamphilus, in the latest and
ly nothing is known, but here, as a child, he fiercest days of the persecution. It was prob-
was catechized in that declaration of behef ably now that Eusebius was imprisoned for
which years afterwards was laid by him before his faith. If so, we have the less difficulty
the great council of Nicaea, and adopted by in explaining his release, without any stain
the assembled Fathers as a basis for the left on his integrity or his courage.
creed of the universal church. Here he Not long after the restoration of peace (a.d.
listened to the Biblical expositions of the 313) Eusebius was unanimously elected to the
learned Dorotheus, thoroughly versed in vacant see of Caesarea. Among the earliest
the Hebrew Scriptures and not unacquainted results of the peace was the erection of a
with Greek literature and philosophy, once magnificent basilica at Tyre under the direc-
the superintendent of the emperor's purple tion of his friend Paulinus, the bishop. Euse-
factory at Tyre, but now a presbyter in the bius was invited to deliver the inaugural
church of Caesarea (H. E. vii. 32). Here, in address. This address he has preserved and
due time, he was himself ordained a presbyter, inserted in his History, where, though not
probably by that bp. Agapius whose wise fore- mentioned, the orator's name is but thinly
thought and untiring assiduitv and open- concealed {H.E. ix. 4). This oration is a
handed benevolence he himself has recorded paean of thanksgiving over the restitution of
{ib.). Here, above all, he contracted with the Church, of which the splendid building
the saintly student Pamphilus that friend- at Tyre was at once the firstfruit and the
ship which was the crown and glorv of his life, type. The incident must have taken place
and which mart>Tdom itself could not sever. not later than a.d. 315. For more than 25
Eusebius owed far more to Pamphilus than years he presided over the church of Caesarea,
the impulse and direction given to his studies. winning the respect and affection of all. He
Pamphilus, no mere student recluse, was a died bp. of Caesarea.
man of large heart and bountiful hand, above When the Arian controversy broke out, the
all things helpful to his friends {Mart. Pal. 11), sympathies of Eusebius were early enlisted on
EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAlREA 319

the side of Arius. If his namesake of Nico- bius took time to consider before subscribing
media may be trusted, he was especially to this revised formula. The three expres-
zealous on behalf of the Arian doctrine at this sions which caused difficulty were : (i) " of
time (Eus. Nicom. in Theod. //. E. i. 5, r/ tov the substance of the Father " (sk ttis ovaias tov
decTTrorov /xov Ei^cre/Sioir cnrovSri rj vir^p dXridovs irarpos); {2) " begotten, not made " {yewr}-
\6yov). But the testimony of this strong divra, ov iroi.-qdh'Ta) ; (3)
" of the same sub-
partisan may well be suspected ;
and the stance " (ofiooiiaLov) ; and of these he de-
attitude of Eusebius of Caesarea throughout manded explanations. The explanations were
suggests that he was influenced rather by so far satisfactory that for the sake of peace he
personal associations and the desire to secure subscribed to the creed. He had the less
liberal treatment for the heresiarch than by scruple in assenting to the final anathema,
any real accordance with his views. What- because the Arian expressions which it con-
ever his motives, he wrote to Alexander, demned were not scriptural, and he considered
bp. of Alexandria, remonstrating with him for that " almost all the confusion and disturb-
deposing Arius and urging that he had mis- ance of the churches " had arisen from the
represented the opinions of the latter (Labbe, use of unscriptural phrases. This letter, he
Cone. viii. 1 148, ed. Colet). The cause of Arius concludes, is written to the Caesareans to ex-
was taken up also by two neighbouring plain that he would resist to the last any vital
bishops, Theodotus of Laodicea and Paulinus change in the traditional creed of his church,
of Tyre. In a letter addressed to his name- but had subscribed to these alterations, when
sake of Constantinople, Alexander complains assured of their innocence, to avoid appearing
of three Syrian bishops, " appointed he knows contentious (a(piKovelK(i3s). See Hort's Two
not how," as having fanned the flame of sedi- Dissertations, pp. 55 seq.
tion (Theod. H. E. i. 3) ; while Arius himself The settlement of the dispute respecting the
claims "all thebishopsintheEast," mentioning time of observing Easter was another import-
by name Eusebius of Caesarea with others, as ant work undertaken by the council. In this
on his side {ib. i. 4). Accordingly, when he was also a leading part has been assigned to Euse-
deposed by a synod convened at Alexandria bius by some modern writers {e.g. Stanley,
by Alexander, Arius appealed to Eusebius Eastern Church, p. 182, following Tillemont,
and others to interpose. A meeting of Syrian H. E. vi. p. 668).
bishops decided for his restoration, though The hopes which Eusebius with others had
wording the decision cautiously. The synod built upon the decisions of the Nicene council
thought that Arius should be allowed to gather were soon dashed. The final peace of the
his congregation about him as heretofore, church seemed as far distant as ever. In three
but added that he must render obedience controversies with three distinguished antago-
to Alexander and entreat to be admitted to nists, Eusebius took a more or less prominent
communion with him {Soz. H. E. i. 13). part and his reputation, whether justly or not,
;

At the council of Nicaea (a.d. 325) Eusebius has suffered greatly in consequence.
took a leading part. This prominence he cannot (i) —
Synod of Antioch. Eustathius, bp. of
have owed to his bishopric, which, though Antioch, was a staunch advocate of the Nicene
important, did not rank with the great sees, doctrine and a determined foe of the Arians.
"the apostolic thrones" {ib. 17) of Rome, He had assailed the tenets of Origen (Socr.
Antioch, and Alexandria. But that he was H. E. vi. 13), of whom Eusebius was an ardent
beyond question the most learned man and champion, and had charged Eusebius himself
most famous living writer in the church at this with faithlessness to the doctrines of Nicaea.
time would suffice to secure him a hearing. He was accused in turn of Sabellianism by Euse-
Probably, however, his importance was due bius (i&.i. 23; Soz. H.E. ii. 19). Tothehistorian
even more to his close relations with the great Socrates the doctrines of the two antagonists
emperor, whose entire confidence he enjoyed. seemed practically identical. Nevertheless
He occupied the first seat to the emperor's they were regarded as the two principals in the
right (F. C. iii. 11), and delivered the opening quarrel (Soz. H. E. ii. 18). A synod, mainly
address to Constantine when he took his seat composed of bishops with Arian or semi- Arian
in the council-chamber (ib. i. prooem., iii. 11 ; sympathies, was assembled at Antioch, a.d.
Soz. H. E. i. iq). The speech is unfortunately 330, to consider the charge of Sabellianism
not preserved. brought against Eustathius, who was deposed.
Eusebius himself has left us an account of The see of Antioch thus became vacant. The
his doings with regard to the main object of assembled bishops proposed Eusebius of
the council in a letter of explanation to his Caesarea as his successor, and wrote to the
church at Caesarea. He laid before the emperor on his behalf, but Eusebius declined
council the creed in use in the Caesarean the honour, alleging the rule of the Church,
church, which had been handed down from regarded as an " apostolic tradition," which
the bishops who preceded him, which he him- forbade translations from one see to another ;

self had been taught at his baptism, and in and Euphronius was elected.
which, both as a presbyter and bishop, he had —
(ii) Synods of Caesarea, Tyre, and J ertisalem.
instructed others. The emperor was satisfied The next stage of the Arian controversy ex-
with the orthodoxy of this creed, inserting hibits Eusebius in conflict with a greater than
however the single word o/j-oovaiov, and giving Eustathius. The disgraceful intrigues of the
explanations as to its meaning which set the Arians and Meletians against Athanasius,
scruples of Eusebius at rest. The assembled which led to his first exile, are related in our
Fathers, taking this as their starting-point, art. Athanasius. It is sufficient to say here
naade other important insertions and altera- that the emperor summoned Athanasius to
tions. Moreover, an anathema was appended appear before a gathering of bishops at
directly condemning Arian doctrines. Euse- Caesarea, to meet the charges brought against
320 EUSEBlUS Of CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA
him. It is stated by Theodoret {H. E. i. 26) the principal persons present. In these Euse-
that Constantine was induced to name bius bore a conspicuous part, finding in this
Caesarea by the Arian party, who selected it dedication festival a far more congenial at-
because the enemies of Athanasius were in a mosphere than in the intrigues of the synod
majority there (evOa 5tj TrXeioi's^o'ai' oi Sv<TfjLfV€h), at Tyre. He speaks of the assemblage at Tyre
but the emperor may have given the prefer- as a mere episode of the festival at Jerusalem
ence to Caesarea because he reposed the (b8ou dr) Trdpepyov). The emperor, he says,
greatest confidence in the moderation (e-mdKeia) preparing for the celebration of this festival,
of its bishop. Athanasius excused himself was anxious to end the quarrels which rent the
from attending, believing that there was a church. In doing so he was obeying the
conspiracy against him, and that he would not Lord's injunction, " Be reconciled to thy
have fair play there {Festal Letters, p. xvii, brother, and then go and offer thy gift " (cf.
Oxf. trans. Theod. H. E. i. 26
; ; Soz. H. E. Soz. i. 26). This view of the emperor's motive
ii. 25). This wasin 334. Athanasius does not is entirely borne out by Constantine's own

mention this synod in his Apology. letter to the synod at Tyre. Eusebius was
The next year (a.d. 335) Athanasius re- greatly impressed by the celebration ; but
ceived a peremptory and angry summons from Tillemont, who shews strong prejudice against
Constantine to appear before a synod of Eusebius throughout, altogether misstates
bishops at Tyre. Theodoret {I.e.) conjectures the case in saying that he " compares or
(wy olum) that the place of meeting was even prefers this assembly to the council of
changed by the emperor out of deference to Nicaea, striving to exalt it as much as he can,
for the sake of effacing the glory of that great
the fears of Athanasius, who " looked with
council," etc. (vi. p. 284). But Eusebius says
suspicion on Caesarea on account of its ruler."
distinctly that " after that first council " this
Athanasius, or his friends, may indeed have
objected to Eusebius as a partisan
was the greatest synod assembled by Con-
for the
stantine V. C. iv. 47) and so far from shewing
;

Egyptian bishops who espoused the cause of


;
(

Athanasius, addressing the synod of Tyre,


any desire to depreciate the council of Nicaea,
he cannot find language magnificent enough to
allege " the law of God " as forbidding " an
sing its glories (iii. 6 seq.).
enemy to be witness or judge," and shortly Arius and Euzoius had presented a confession
afterwards add mysteriously, " ye know why
of faith to the emperor, seeking readmission to
Eusebius of Caesarea has become an enemy
the church. The emperor was satisfied that
since last year " (Athan. Ap. c. Arian. 77,
this document was in harmony with the faith
Op. i. p. 153). The scenes at the synod of
of Nicaea, and sent Arius and Euzoius to
Tyre form the most picturesque and the most Jerusalem, requesting the synod to consider
shameful chapter in the Arian controversy. their confession of faith and restore them
After all allowance for the exaggerations of Arius and his followers were
to communion.
the Athanasian party, from whom our know- Of
accordingly readmitted at Jerusalem.
ledge is chiefly derived, the proceedings will
the bishops responsible for this act, some were
still remain an undying shame to Eusebius of
hostile to Athanasius, others would regard it
Nicomedia and his fellow-intriguers. But an act of pacification. The stress which
as
there is no reason for supposing that Eusebius
Eusebius lays on Constantine's desire to secure
of Caesarea took any active part in these
peace on this, as on all other occasions,
plots. Athanasius mentions him rarely, and suggests that that was a predominant idea in
then without any special bitterness. The
" Eusebians" {ol wepl Evael^iiw) are always the the writer's own mind, though perhaps not
unmixed with other influences.
adherents of his Nicomedian namesake. But,
though probably not participating in, and
(iii) Synod of Constantinople. —
Athanasius
had not fled to Constantinople in vain. Con-
possibly ignorant of their plots, Eusebius of stantine desired pacification but was not
Caesarea was certainly used as a tool by the insensible to justice and the personal plead-
;

more unscrupulous and violent partisans of ings of Athanasius convinced him that justice
Arius, and must bear the reproach of a had been outraged {Ap. c. Arian. 86). The
too easy compliance with their actions. The bishops at the dedication festival had scarcely
proceedings were cut short by the withdrawal executed the request, or command, of the
of Athanasius, who suddenly sailed to Con-
emperor's first letter, when they received
stantinople, and appealed in person to the another written in a very different temper
emperor. The synod condemned hira by (ib. Socr. H. E. i.
; 34 Soz. H. E. ii. 27)- It was
;

default.
addressed " to the bishops that had assembled
While the bishops at Tyre were in the midst at Tyre " described their proceedings as
;
of their session, an urgent summons from the " tuniultuous and stormy"; and summoned
emperor called them to take part in the ap- them without delay to Constantinople. The
proaching festival at Jerusalem (Eus. V. C. leaders of the Eusebian party alone obeyed the ;

iy. 41 seq. ;Socr. H. E. i. 33 seq. Soz. H. E. rest retired to their homes.


; Among those who
ii. 26 Theod. H. E. i. 29). It was the tricen- obeyed was Eusebius of Caesarea. Of the
;

nalia of Constantine. No previous sovereign principal events which occurred at Constanti-


after Augustus, the founder of the empire, had nople, the banishment of Athanasius and the
reigned for thirty years. Constantine had a death of Arius, we need not speak here. But
fondness for magnificent ceremonial, and here the proceedings of the synod then held there
was a noble opportunity {V. C. iv. 40, Kaipbs (a.d. 336) have an important bearing on the
euKaLpoi). The occasion was marked by the The chief work of
literary history of Eusebius.
dedication of Constantine's new and splendid thesynodwasthecondemnationof Marcellus,
basilica, built on the site of Calvary. The bp. of Ancyra, an uncompromising opponent of
festival was graced by a series of orations from the Arians. He had written a book in reply to

EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA 321

the Arian Asterius " the sophist," in which his the Panegyric, the Life of Constantine, the
zeal against Arian tenets goaded him into ex- treatise Against Marcellus, and the companion
pressions that had arank savour of SabelUanism. treatise On the Theology of the Church prob-;

The proceedings against him had commenced ably he had in hand at the same time other
at Jerusalem and were continued at Constanti- unfinished works, such as the Theophania.
nople, where he was condemned of SabelUanism, There are no signs of failing mental vigour in
and deposed from his bishopric (Socr. H. E. i. these works. The two doctrinal treatises are
36 Soz. H. E. ii. 33). Eusebius is especially
;
perhaps his most forcible and lucid writings.
mentioned as taking part in this synod (Athan. The Panegyric and the Life of Constantine are
Ap. c. Arian. 87 ; cf. Eus. c. Marc. ii. 4, p. disfigured by a too luxuriant rhetoric, but in
115). Not satisfied with this, the dominant vigour equal any of his earlier works. Of his
party urged Eusebius to undertake a refuta- death itself no record is left. Acacius, his
tion of the heretic. Two works against Mar- successor, had been his pupil. Though more
cellus were his response. Eusebius found decidedly Arian in bias, he was a devoted
also more congenial employment during his admirer of his master (Soz. H. E. iii. 2). He
sojourn at Constantinople. The celebration wrote a Life of Eusebius, and apparently edited
of the emperor's tricennalia had not yet ended, some of his works.
and Eusebius delivered a panegyric which he Literary Works. —
The literary remains of
afterwards appended to his Life of Constantine. Eusebius are a rich and, excepting the Chronicle
The delivery of this oration may have been the and the Ecclesiastical History, a comparatively
chief motive which induced Eusebius to ac- unexplored mine of study. They may be classed
company the Arian bishops to Constantinople. as A. Historical B. A pologetic C. Critical and
: ; ;

It must have been during this same visit, Exegetical; D. Doctrinal; E Orations; F. Letters.
though on an earlier day, that he delivered A. Historical. —
(i) Life of Pamphilus. —
before the emperor his discourse on the church Eusebius {Mart. Pal. 11), speaking of his
of the Holy Sepulchre, probably previously friend's martyrdom, refers to this work as
spoken also at the dedication itself. This ora- follows " The rest of the triumphs of his
:

tion has unfortunately not survived. It does virtue, requiring a longer narration, we have
not appear that Eusebius had any personal already before this given to the world in a
interview with Constantine before the council separate work in three books, of which his life
of Nicaea. Here, however, he stood high in the is the subject." He also refers to it 3 times
emperor's favour, as the prominent position in his History (H. E. vi. 32, vii. 32, viii. 13).
assigned to him shews ;and there seems The Life of Pamphilus was thus written before
thenceforward no interruption in their cordial the History, and before the shorter ed. of
relations. The emperor used to enter into (2) The Martyrs of Palestine. —This work is
extant in two forms, a shorter and a longer.
familiar conversation with him, relating the
most remarkable incidents in his career, such The shorter is attached to the History, com-
as the miraculous appearance of the cross in the monly between the 8th and 9th books.
skies {V. C. i. 28), and the protection afforded The longer form is not extant entire in the
by that emblem in battle (ii. 9). He corre- original Greek. In the Bollandist Acta
sponded with him on various subjects, on one Sanctorum (Jim. t. i. p. 64) Papebroch pulj.
occasion asking him to see to the execution of for the first time in Greek, from a Paris
fifty copies of the Scriptures for his new capital, MS. of the Metaphrast, an account of the
and supplying him with the necessary means martyrdom of Pamphilus and others, pro-
(iv. 36) ;and he listened with patience, and fessedly " composed by Eusebius Pamphili."
even with delight, to the lengthy and elaborate It had appeared in a Latin version before.
orations which Eusebius delivered from time to The Greek was reprinted by Fabricius, Hippo-
time in his presence. Constantine praises his lytus. ii. p. 217. This is a fuller account of the
eulogist's gentleness or moderation (iii. 60). incidents related in the Mart. Pal. 11 attached
NorwasConstantinetheonlymemberof the im- to the History. Their common matter is ex-
perial family with whom Eusebius had friendly pressed in the same words, or nearly so. Hence
relations. The empress Constantia, the sister one must have been an enlargement or an
of Constantine and wife of Licinius, wrote to abridgment of the other.
him on a matter of religious interest. In his Nor can it reasonably be doubted that the
reply we are especially struck with the frank- shorter form of the Palestinian Martyrs is
ness of expostulation, almost of rebuke, with Eusebius's own. It retains those notices of
which he addresses her (Spicil. Solesm. i. 383). the longer form in which Eusebius speaks in
The great emperor breathed his last on May his own person and, moreover, in the pas-
;

22, A.D. 337 ; and Eusebius died not later than sages peculiar to this shorter form, Eusebius
the close of 339 or the beginning of 340. In is evidently the speaker. Thus (c. 11) he
Wright's Ancient Syrian Mariyrology, which mentions having already written a special
cannot date later than half a century after work in three books on the life of Pamphilus ;

the event, " the commemoration of Eusebius and when recording the death of Silvanus, who
bp. of Palestine " is placed on May 30. If this had had his eyes put out (c. 13), mentions his
represents the day of his death, as probably it own astonishment when he once heard him
does, he must have died in 339, for the notices reading the Scriptures, as he supposed, from
will hardly al^ow so late a date in the following a book in church, but was told that he was
year. His literary activity was unabated to blind and was repeating them by heart.
the end. Four years at most can have elapsed Moreover, other incidental notices, inserted
between his last visit to Constantinople and from time to time and having no place in the
his death. He must have been nearly 80 years longer form, shew the knowledge of a contem-
old when the end came. Yet at this advanced porary and eyewitness.
age, and within this short period, he composed The longer edition seems to be the original
21
322 EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA
form. It is an independent work, apparent!)' Christian apologists retorted by proving that
written not very long after the events. It the Grecian legislators and philosophers were
betrays no other motive than to inform and very much later than the Hebrew legislator and
edify the readers, more especially the Chris- later than the prophets who had testified of
tians of Caesarea and Palestine, to whom it is Christ and taught a religion of which Christi-
immediately addressed. " Our city of Cae- anity was the legitimate continuation. In the
sarea " is an expression occurring several Praeparatio Evangelica (x. 9) Eusebius urges
times (pp. 4 twice, 25, 30). " This our this, quoting largely from preceding writers
country," " this our city," are analogous who had proved the antiquity of the Jews, e.g.
phrases (pp. 8, 13). Josephus, Tatian, Clement of Alexandria, and
In the shorter form the case is different. especially Africanus. This last writer had
The writer does not localize himself in the made the synchronisms between sacred and
same way. It is always " the city," never profane history his special study, and his
" this city," of Caesarea. The appeal to the chronological work, now lost, gave Eusebius
Caesareans in recounting the miracle is left the model and, to a great extent, the materials
out (c. 4). The hortatory beginning and for hisown Chronicle.
ending are omitted, and the didactic portions The Greek of Eusebius's own work has been
abridged or excised. The shorter form thus and until recent times it was only known
lost,
appears to be part of a larger work, in which through the use made of it by successors, par-
the sufferings of the martyrs were set off against ticularly Jerome, who translated it into Latin,
the deaths of the persecutors. The object enlarging the notices of Roman history and
would thus be the vindication of God's right- continuing it to his own time. In 1606 Scaliger
eousness. This idea appears several times published an edition of the Chronicle, in whiclr
elsewhere in Eusebius, and he may have desired he attempted to restore the Greek of Eusebius,
to embody it in a separate treatise. collecting from Syncellus, Cedrenus, and other
(3) Collection of Ancient Martyrdoms. — Of Greek chronologers, notices which he believed
this work Eusebius was not the author, but himself able, mainly by the help of Jerome's
merely, as the title suggests and as the notices translation, to identify as copied from Euse-
require, the compiler and editor. The nar- bius but his restoration of the first book,
;

ratives of martyrdoms were, in the eyes of where he had but little guidance from Jerome,
Eusebius, not only valuable as history but did not inspire confidence, and has been
instructive as lessons (H. E. v. praef.). Hence proved untrustworthy. An Armenian trans.
he took pains to preserve authentic records of of the Chronicle, pub. in 1818, enables us now
them, himself undertaking to record those of to state the contents of bk. i.
his own country, Palestine, at this time while
; After pleading that early Greek and even
he left to others in different parts of the world Hebrew chronology present many difficulties,
to relate those " quae ipsi miserrima vider- Eusebius, in the first section, gives a sketch of
unt," declaring that only thus could strict Chaldee and Assyrian history, subjoining a
accuracy be attained (//. E. viii. 13, with the table of Assyrian, Median, Lydian, and Per-
whole context). But he was anxious also to sian kings, ending with the Darius conquered
preserve the records of past persecutions. by Alexander. The authors he uses are
Hence this collection of Martyrologies. The Alexander Polyhistor, and, as known through
epithet " ancient " {apxa-^) must be regarded him, Berosus ; Abydenus, Josephus, Castor,
as relative, applying to all prior to the " per- Diodorus, and Cephalion. He notes the coin-
secution of his own time " (6 KaO' ijfxds 8iuiy/j.6s, cidences of these writers with Hebrew history
according to his favourite expression). He and suggests that the incredible lengths as-
himself refers to this collection for the martyr- signed to reigns in the early Chaldee history
dom of Polycarp and others at Smyrna under may be reduced if the " sari," said to be
Antoninus Pius a.d. 155 or 156 (iv. 15), for the periods of 3,600 years, were in reality far
documents relating to the sufferers in Gaul shorter periods, and in like manner, following
under M. Aurelius a.d. 177 (v. i, seq.), and for Africanus, tliat the Egyptian years may be
the defence of Apollonius under Commodus in reality but months. An alternative sug-
A.D. 180-185 (v. 21). But it would probably gestion in this first book is that some Egyptian
comprise any martyrdoms which occurred dynasties may have been, not consecutive,
before the long peace that preceded the out- but synchronous. The second section treats
break of the last persecution under Diocletian. of Hebrew chronology, the secular authorities
[(4) Chronicle.— This work may be described used being Josephus and Africanus. Eusebius
in words suggested by the author's own ac- notices the chronological difference between
count of it at the beginning of his Eclogue the Heb., LXX., and Samaritan texts, and
Propheticae, as " chronological tables, to which conjectures that the Hebrews, to justify by
is prefixed an epitome of universal history patriarchal example their love of early mar-
drawn from various sources." The epitome riages, systematically shortened the intervals
occupies the first book, the tables the second. between the birth of each patriarch and that
The tables exhibit in parallel columns the of his first son. He gives other arguments
successions of the rulers of different nations, which decide him in favour of the LXX,
so that contemporary monarchs can be seen especially as it was the version used by our
at a glance. Notes mark the years of the Lord and the apostles. In the period from
more remarkable historical events, these notes the Deluge to the birth of Abraham, which
constituting an epitome of history. The in- Eusebius makes the initial point of his own
terest which Christians felt in the study of tables, he follows the LXX, except that he
comparative chronology arose from heathen omits the second Cainan, making 942 years ;

opponents contrasting the antiquity of their and thus placing the birth of Abraham in the
rites with the novelty of the Christian religion. year from the Creation 3184. He reckons 480

EUSEBIUS Of CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAftEA 323

years between the Exodus and Solomon's which had befallen the Jewish race
tion (6) ;

temple, as in I. Kings. In the preface to histhe persecutions of the church and the vic-
second book, he states that his predecessors tories of the martyrs and confessors, con-
had made Moses contemporary with Inachus, cluding with the great and final deliverance
and 700 years earlier than the Trojan War. wrought by the Saviour in the author's own
His own computation made Inachus contem- day. He prays for guidance, since he is
porary with Jacob, and Moses with Cecrops, entering upon an untrodden way, where he
but he contends that this leaves Moses still will find no footprints, though the works of
nearly 400 years older than the capture of predecessors may serve as beacon-lights here
Troy, and older than Deucalion's Deluge, and there through the waste. He considers
Phaethon's Conflagration, Bacchus, Aescu- it absolutely necessary {dfay^aidTara) to
lapius, Castor and Pollux, Hercules, Homer undertake the task, because no one else before
and the Seven Wise Men of Greece, and Pytha- him had done so. The work, he concludes,
goras the first philosopher. Eusebius counts must of necessity commence with the Incar-
442 years from the foundation of Solomon's nation and Divinity (ot\-oco,ui'aj re Kui 6eo\oylas)
temple to its destruction under Zedekiah. of Christ, because from Him we all derive our
He reckons two prophetic periods of 70 years name. Accordingly he proceeds to shew that
of captivity. One begins with the destruction Christianity is no new thing, but has its roots
of the temple, and ends with the 2nd year of in the eternal past. The Word was with God
Darius Hystaspis and the rebuilding of the before the beginning of creation. He was
temple under Zerubbabel. The other is from recognized and known by righteous men in all
the first prophesying of Jeremiah in the 15th ages, especially among the Hebrews His ;

year of Josiah to the ist year of Cyrus, when advent, even His very names, were foretold
an altar was set up at Jerusalem and the and glorified His society— the Christian
;

foundations of the temple laid. —


In the tables church was the subject of prophecy, while
Eusebius gives an alternative for this period, the Christian type of life was never without
viz. from the 3rd year of Jehoiakim to the 19th examples since the race began (i. 4, cf. ii. iK
of Cyrus. From the 2nd year of Darius, which " After this necessary preparation " ifiera ttjv
he counts as the ist year of the 65th olympiad, Siovffav TrpoKOLTaaKeoiiV, i. 5), he proceeds to
Eusebius counts 548 years to the preaching speak of the Incarnation, its chronology and
of our Lord and the 15th year of Tiberius, synchronisms in external history, the Herodian
which he reckons as the 4th year of the 201st kingdom, the Roman empire, the Jewish
olympiad, and as the year 5228 from the priesthood, including a discussion of the
creation of the world. There is every reason Saviour's genealogy thus shewing that it
;

for thinking that more editions of the Chronicle came in the fulness of time as a realization of
than one were published by Eusebius in his prophecy (cc. 5-10). A chapter is devoted to
lifetime. In its latest form it terminates with the Baptist as the first herald (c. 11), another
the Viceanalia of Constantine. Jerome says to the appointment of the Twelve and the
in his preface that as far as the taking of Troy Seventy (c. 12) a third to the mission sent
;

his work was a mere translation of that of by Christ Himself to Edessa, as recorded in
Eusebius ; that from that date to the point the archives of that city (c. 13). We are thus
at which the work of Eusebius closes, he added brought to the time of the Ascension, and the
notices, from Suetonius and others, relating first book ends. The second comprises the
to Roman history ; and that the conclusion preaching of the apostles to the destruction of
from where Eusebius breaks off to his own Jerusalem, the writer's aim being not to repeat
time was entirely his own. G.S.] the accounts in the N.T., but to supplement
{5) Ecclesiastical History. —
From many them from external sources. The third book
considerations it seems clear that the History extends to the reign of Trajan, and covers the
was finished some time in a.d. 324 or 325 sub-apostolic age, ending with notices of
before midsummer in the latter year, and Ignatius, Clement, and Papias. The fourth
probably some months earlier; and the earlier and fifth carry us to the close of the 2nd cent.,
books even some years before this. including the Montanist, Quartodeciman, and
The work contains no indications that it was Monarchian disputes. The sixth contains the
due to any suggestion from without, as some period from the persecution of Severus (a.d.
have supposed. If the author had been 203) to that of Decius (a.d. 250), the central
prompted to it byConstantine, he would hardly figure being Origen, of whom a full account is
have been silent about the fact, for he is only given. The seventh continues the narrative
too ready elsewhere to parade the flatteries of to the outbreak of the great persecution under
his imperial patron. Moreover, it was pro- Diocletian, and is largely composed of quota-
bably written in great measure, or at least the tions from Dionysius of Alexandria, as the
materials for it collected, before his relations preface states. It is significant that the last
with Constantine began. His own language forty years of this period, though contem-
rather suggests that it grew out of a previous porary with the historian, are dismissed in a
work, the Chronicle. single long chapter. It was a period of very
He begins by enumerating the topics with rapid but silent progress, when the church for
which it is intended to deal (i) the succes-
: the first time was in the happy condition of
sions of the apostles with continuous chrono- having no history. The eighth book gives the
logical data from the Christian era to his own history of the persecution of Diocletian till the
time ; (2) the events of ecclesiastical history "palinode," the edict of Galerius (a.d. 311).
;

(3) the most distinguished rulers, preachers, The ninth relates the sufferings of the Eastern
and writers in the church (4) the teachers of Christians until the victory over Maxentius at
;

heresy who, like " grievous wolves," have the Milvian bridge in the West, and the death
ravaged the flock of Christ; (5) the retribu- of Maximin in the East, left Constantine and
,

3^4 EUSEBIUS Of CAESAREA ilUSEBlUS OF'CAESAREA


Licinius sole emperors. The tenth and last of Latin Christendom generally. Thus he
book, dedicated to Paulinus, gives an account knows nothing of Tertullian's works, except
of the rebuilding of the churches, the imperial the Apologeticum, which he quotes (ii. 2, 25,
decrees favourable to the Christians, the sub- iii. 20, 33, v. 5) from a bad Greek translation
sequent rebellion of Licinius, and the victory (e.g. ii. 25, where the translator, being ignorant
of Constantine by which he was left sole of the Latin idiom cum maxime, destroys the
master of the Roman world. A panegyric of sense). Of Tertullian himself he gives no
Constantine closes the whole. account, but calls him a " Roman." Pliny's
Eusebius thus had a truly noble conception letter he only knows through Tertullian (iii.
of the work which he had undertaken. It was 33) and he is unacquainted with the name
nothing less than the history of a society of the province which Pliny governed. Of
which stood in an intimate relation to the Hippolytus again he has very little informa-
Divine Logos Himself, a society whose roots tion to communicate, and cannot even tell the
struck down into the remotest past and whose name of his see (vi. 20, 22). His account of
destinies soared into the eternal future. He Cyprian, too, is extremely meagre (vi. 43, vii.
felt, moreover, that he himself lived at the 3), though Cyprian was for some years the most
great crisis in its history. Now at length it conspicuous figure in Western Christendom,
seemed to have conquered the powers of this and died (a.d. 258) not very long before his
world. This was the very time, therefore, to own birth. He betrays the same ignorance
place on record the incidents of its past career. with regard to the bps. of Rome. His dates
Moreover, he had great opportunities, such as here, strangely enough, are widest of the mark
were not likely to fall to another. In his own when close upon his own time. Thus he
episcopal city, perhaps in his own official assigns to XystusII. (f a.d. 258) eleven years
residence, Pamphilus had got together the (vii. 27) instead of months to Eutychianus
;

largest Christian library yet collected. Not (fA.D. 283) ten months (vii. 32) instead of
far off, at Jerusalem, was another valuable nearly nine years to Gains, whom he calls
;

library, collected a century earlier by the his own contemporary, and who died long
bp. Alexander, and especially rich in the after he had arrived at manhood (a.d. 296),
correspondence of men of letters and rulers " about fifteen years " (vii. 32) instead of
in the church, " from which library," writes twelve. He seems to have had a corrupt list
Eusebius, " we too have been able to collect and did not possess the knowledge necessary
together the materials for this undertaking to correct it. With the Latin language he
which we have in hand " (//. E. vi. 20). appears to have had no thorough acquaintance,
Moreover, he had been trained in a highly though he sometimes ventured to translate
efficient school of literary industry under Latin documents (iv. 8, 9 cf. viii. 17).
; But
Pamphilus, while his passion for learning has he must not be held responsible for the
rarely been equalled, perhaps never surpassed. blunders in the versions of others, e.g. of
The execution of his work, however, falls Tertullian's Apologeticum. The translations
far short of the conception. The faults indeed of state documents in the later books may be
are so patent as to have unjustly obscured the the semi-official Greek versions such as Con-
merits, for it is withal a noble monument of stantine was in the habit of employing persons
literary labour. We must remember his plea to make (V. C. iv. 32). See on this subject
for indulgence, as one setting foot upon new Heinichen's note on H. E. iv. 8.
ground, " nullius ante trita solo "; and as he (2) Under the second head the most vital
had no predecessor, so he had no successor. question is the sincerity of Eusebius. Did he
Rufinus, Socrates, Sozomen, Theodoret, all tamper with his materials or not ? The sar-
commenced where he ended. The most bitter casm of Gibbon (Decline and Fall, c. xvi.) is
of his theological adversaries were forced to well known :
" The gravest of the ecclesias-
confess their obligations to him, and to speak tical historians, Eusebius himself, indirectly
of his work with respect. If we reflect what confesses that he has related whatever might
a blank would be left in our knowledge of this redound to the glory, and that he has sup-
important chapter in history if the narrative pressed all that could tend to the disgrace, of
of Eusebius were blotted out, we shall appreci- religion." The passages to which he refers
ate our enormous debt of gratitude to him. (H. E. viii. 2 Mart. Pal. 12) do not bear out
;

Two points require consideration (i) the this imputation. There is no indirectness
:

range and adequacy of his materials, and (2) about them, but on the contrary they deplore,
the use made of them. in the most emphatic terms, the evils which
(i) The range of materials is astonishing disgraced the church, and they represent the
when we consider that Eusebius was a pioneer. persecution under Diocletian as a just retri-
Some hundred works, several of them very bution for these wrongdoings. The ambi-
lengthy, are either directly cited or referred tions, intriguing for office, factious quarrels,
to as read. In many instances he would read cowardly denials and shipwrecks of the faith
an entire treatise for the sake of one or two — " evil piled upon evil " (/caxd KaKoh
historical notices, and must have searched iwiTeix^^oyTes) —are denounced in no meas-
many others without finding anything to serve ured language. Eusebius contents himself
his purpose, thus involving enormous labour. with condemning these sins and shortcomings
This then is his strongest point. Yet even in general terms, without entering into de-
here deficiencies may be noted. He very tails ; declaring his intention of confining
rarely quotes the works of heresiarchs them- himself to topics profitable {wpdi ux^eXei'at) to
selves, being content to give their opinions his own and future generations. This treat-
through the medium of their opponents' ment may be regarded as too great a sacrifice
refutations. A still greater defect is his to edification but it leaves no imputation
;

considerable ignorance of Latin literature and on his honesty. Nor again can the special
'

EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA 325

charges against his honour as a narrator be for adding the interpretation which his
sustained. There is no ground whatever for countrymen placed upon it. What he
the surmise that Eusebius forged or inter- vouches for we can accept as truth what he
;

polated the passage from Josephus relating to records as apopular comment leaveshis histori-
our Lord, quoted in H. E. i. ii, though Heini- cal veracity and judgment unimpaired." [w.]
chen (iii. pp. 623 seq., Melet. ii.) is disposed to Even Gibbon (c. xvi.) describes the character
entertain the charge. The passage is con- of Eusebius as " less tinctured with credulity,
tained in all our extant MSS., and there is and more practised in the arts of courts, than
sufficient evidence that other interpolations that of almost any of his contemporaries."
(though not this) were introduced into the A far more serious drawback is the loose and
text of Josephus long before this time ^see uncritical spirit in which he sometimes deals
Orig. c. Cels. i. 47, Delarue's note). Another with his materials. This shews itself in
interpolation in Josephus which Eusebius diverse ways, (a) He is not always to be
quotes (ii. 23) was certainly known to Origen trusted in his discrimination of genuine and
{I.e.). t)oubtless also the omission of the owl spurious documents. As regards the canon
in the account of Herod Agrippa's death (H. E. of Scripture indeed he takes special pains;
ii. 10) was already in some texts of Josephus lays down certain principles which shall guide
(Ant. xix. 8, 2). The manner in which Euse- him in the production of testimonies and on;

bius deals with his very numerous quotations the whole adheres to these principles with
elsewhere, where we can test his honesty, suffi- fidelity (see Contemp. Rev. Jan. 1875, pp. 169
ciently vindicates him from this unjust charge. seq.). Yet elsewhere he adduces as genuine
Moreover, Eusebius is generally careful to the correspondence of Christ and Abgarus
collect the best evidence accessible, and also (i. 13), though never treating it as canonical

to distinguish between different kinds of Scripture. The unworthy suspicion that


evidence. " Almost every page witnesses to Eusebius forged this correspondence which he
the zeal with which he collected testimonies asserted to be a translation of a Syriac original
from writers who lived at the time of the found in the archives of Edessa has been re-
events which he describes. For the sixth and futed by the discovery and publication of the
seventh books he evidently rejoices to be able original Syriac {The Doctrine of Addai the
to use for the foundation of his narrative the Apostle with an English Translation and Notes
contemporary letters of Dionysius ; Diony-
'
by G. Phillips, Lond. 1876 see Zahn, Gotting.
;

sius, our great bp. of Alexandria,' he writes, Gel. Anz. Feb. 6, 1877, pp. 161 seq. Contemp.
;

'
will again help me by his own words in Rev. May 1877, p. 1137 ;a portion of this
the composition of my seventh book of the work had been published some time before in
history, since he relates in order the events of Cnreion' s Ancient Syriac Documents, pp. 6 seq.,
his own time in the letters which he has left Lond. 1864). Not his honesty, but his critical
(vii. praef.). ... In accordance with this in- discernment was at fault. Yet we cannot be
stinctive desire for original testimony, Euse- severe upon him for maintaining a position
bius scrupulously distinguishes facts which which, however untenable, has commended
rest on documentary from those which rest itself to Cave {H. L. i. p. 2), Grabe {Spic. Patr.
on oral evidence. Some things he relates on i. pp. I seq.), and other writers of this stamp,
the authority of a 'general' (iii. 11, 36) or as defensible. This, moreover, is the most
'
old report '
(iii. 19, 20) or from tradition flagrant instance of misappreciation. On the
(i. 7, ii. 9, vi. 2, etc.). In the lists of successions whole, considering the great mass of spurious
he is careful to notice where written records documents current in his age, we may well
failed him. '
I could not,' he says, by any admire his discrimination, as e.g. in the case
'

means find the chronology of the bps. of of the numerous Clementine writings (iii. 16,
Jerusalem preserved in writing ; thus much 38), alleging the presence or absence of ex-
only I received from written sources, that ternal testimony for his decisions. Pearson's
there were fifteen bishops in succession up to eulogy {Vind. Ign. i. 8) on Eusebius, though
the date of the siege under Hadrian, etc' (iv. exaggerated, is not undeserved. He is gener-
5)." [w.] " There is nothing like hearing the ally a safe guide in discriminating between the
actual words " of the writer, he says again genuine and the spurious, {b) He is often
and again (i. 23, iii. 32, vii. 23 ; cf. iv. 23), careless in his manner of quoting. His quo-
when introducing a quotation. His general tations from Irenaeus, for instance, lose much
sincerity and good faith seem, therefore, clear. of their significance, even for his own purpose,
But his intellectual qualifications were in by abstraction from their context (v. 8). His
many respects defective. His credulity, in- quotations from Papias (iii. 39) and from
deed, has frequently been much exaggerated. Hcgesippus (iii. 32, iv. 22) are tantalizing by
" Undoubtedly he relates many incidents their brevity, for the exact bearing of the
which may seem to us incredible, but, when words could only have been learnt from their
he does so, he gives the evidence on which context. But, except in the passages from
they are recommended to him. At one time Josephus (where the blame, as we have seen,
it is the express testimony of some well-known belongs elsewhere), the quotations themselves
writer, at another a general behef, at another are given with fair accuracy, (c) He draws
an old tradition, at another his own observa- hasty and unwarranted inferences from his
tion (v. 7, vi. 9. vii. 17, 18)." [w.] In the authorities, and is loose in interpreting their
most remarkable passage bearing on the bearing. This is his weakest point as a
question he recounts his own experience critical historian. Thus he quotes Josephus
during the last persecution in Palestine [Mart. respecting the census of Quirinus and the
Pal. 9). " There can be no doubt about the insurrections of Theudas and of Judas the
occurrence which Eusebius here describes, and Galilean, as if he agreed in all respects with
it does not appear that he can be reproached the accounts in St. Luke, and does not notice
326 EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA
the chronological difficulties (i. 5, 9 ; ii. 11). for the period. For the council of Nicaea
He adduces the Jewish historian as a witness especially, and for some portions of the Arian
to the assignment of a tetrarchy to Lysanias controversy, it is a primary source of infor-
(i. 9), though in fact Josephus says nothing mation of the highest value. As regards the
about this Lysanias in the passage in question, emperor himself, it is notoriously one-sided.
but elsewhere mentions an earlier person The verdict of Socrates will not be disputed.
bearing the name as ruler of Abilene {Ant. xx. The author, he says, " has devoted more
7.1; 5. /. ii. II. 5). He represents this same thought to the praises of the emperor and to
writer as stating that Herod Antipas was the grandiloquence of language befitting a
banished to Vienne (i. 11), whereas Josephus paneg^Tric, as if he were pronouncing an
sends Archelaus to Vienne {B. J. ii. 7. 3) and encomium, than to the accurate narrative of
Herod Antipas to Lyons (Ant. xviii. 7. 2) or the events which took place." But there is
Spain [B. J. ii. 9. 6). He quotes Philo's no ground for suspecting him of misrepresent-
description of the Jewish Therapeutae, as if ing the facts given, and with the qualification
it related to Christian ascetics (ii. 17). He stated above, his biography has the highest
gives, side by side, the contradictory accounts value. H is a vivid picture of certain aspects
of the death of James the Just in Josephus of a great personality, painted by one familiar-
and Hegesippus, as if they tallied (ii. 23). ly acquainted with him, who had access to
He hopelessly confuses the brothers M. Aure- important documents. It may even be set
lius and L. Verus (v. prooem.. 4, 5) from a down to the credit of Eusebius that his praises
misunderstanding of his documents, though of Constantine are much louder after his death
in the Chronicle (ii. p. 170) he is substantially than during his lifetime. In this respect he
correct with regard to these emperors. Many contrasts favourably with Seneca. Nor shall
other examples of such carelessness might be we do justice to Eusebius unless we bear in
produced, (d) He is very desultory in his mind the extravagant praises which even
treatment, placing in different parts of his heathen panegyrists lavished on the great
work notices bearing on the same subject. He Christian emperor before his face, as an in-
relates a fact, or quotes an authority bearing dication of the spirit of the age. But after
upon it, in season or out of season, according all excuses made, this indiscriminate praise of
as it is recalled to his memory by some Constantine is a reproach from which we
accidental connexion. " Nothing can illus- should gladly have held Eusebius free.
trate this characteristic better than the B. Apologetic. —(7) Against Hierocles.

manner in which he deals with the canon of Hierocles was governor in Bithynia, and used
the N.T. After mentioning the martyrdom his power ruthlessly to embitter the persecution
of St. Peter and St. Paul at Rome, he proceeds which he is thought to haveinstigated(Lactant.
at once (iii. 3) without any further preface to Div. Inst. V. 2 ; Mart. Pers. 16; see Mason,
enumerate the writings attributed to them Persecution of Diocletian, pp. 58, 108). Not
respectively, distinguishing those which were satisfied with assailing the Christians from
generally received by ancient tradition from the tribunal, he attacked them also with his
those which were disputed. At the same time pen. The title of his work seems to have been
he adds a notice of the Shepherd, because it 6 <i>i\a\r)OT]s, The Lover of Truth. It was a
had been attributed by some to the Hermas ruthless assault on Christianity, written in
rnentioned by St. Paul. After this he resumes a biting style. Its main object was to expose
his narrative, and then having related the last the contradictions of the Christian records.
labours of St. John, he gives an account of the Eusebius, however, confines himself to one
writings attributed to him ^iii. 24), promising point — the comparison of Apollonius, as de-
a further discussion of the Apocalypse, which, scribed in his Life by Philostratus, with our
however, does not appear. This catalogue is Saviour, to the disparagement of the latter.
followed by some fragmentary discussions on There is much difference of opinion whether
the Gospels, to which a general classification Philostratus himself intended to set up Apol-
of all the books claiming to have apostolic lonius as a rival to the Christ of the Gospels
authority is added. When this is ended, the [Apollonius of Tyana], but Hierocles at all
history suddenly goes back to a point in the events turned his romance to this use.
middle of the former book (ii. 15). Elsewhere Eusebius refutes his opponent with great
he repeats the notice of an incident for the moderation, and generally with good effect.
sake of adding some new detail, yet so as to He allows that Apollonius was a wise and
mar the symmetry of his work." [w.] Ex- virtuous man, but refuses to concede the
amples of this fault occur in the accounts of higher claims advanced on his behalf. He
the first preaching at Edcssa (i. 13, ii. i), of the shews that the work of Philostratus was not
writings of Clement of Rome (iii. 16, 38 ; iv. based on satisfactory evidence ; that the
22, 23, etc.), of the daughters of Philip (iii. narrative is full of absurdities and contra-
30, 39 ; cf. V. 17, 24), etc. dictions and that the moral character of

;

(6) Life of Constantine, in four books. The Apollonius as therein portrayed is far from
date of this work is fixed within narrow limits. perfect. He maintains that the supernatural
It was written after the death of the great incidents, if they actually occurred, might
emperor (May 337) and after his three sons had have been the work of demons. In conclu-

been declared Augusti (Sept. 337I see iv. 68 ;
sion (§§ 46-48) he refutes and denounces the
and Eusebius himself died not later than a.d. fatalism of Apollonius, as alone sufficient to
340. Though not professing to be such, it is discredit his wisdom.
to some extent a continuation of the Eccle- (8) Against Porphyry, an elaborate work in
siastical History. As such it is mentioned bv 25 books Hieron. Ep. 70 ad Magn. § 3 (i.

:

Socrates (H. E. i. r), to whom, as to other p. 427, Vallarsi) ; Vir. III. 81. No part of
historians, it furnishes important materials this elaborate refutation has survived. Yet

EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA 327

we may form some notion contents


of its materialists of all schools. He claims to have
from the Praeparatio and Demonstratio Evan- thus given a complete answer to those who
gelica, in considerable portions of which charge Christians with transferring their
Eusebius obviously has Porphyry in view, allegiance from Hellenism to Hebraism blindly
even where he does not name him. To and without knowledge. In the Demon-
Jerome and Socrates the refutation seemed stration, bks. i. and ii. are introductory (iii. i.
satisfactory. Philostorgius {H. E. viii. 14) r, tCcv wpoXeyo/j.evwv). In bk. i. a sketch is
preferred the similar work of Apollinaris to given of the Gospel teaching and reasons
it, as also to the earlier refutation of Method- alleged why Christians, while adopting the
ius, but himself added another reply to Hebrew Oracles, should depart from the Jew-
Porphyry (H. E. x. 10). All the four refuta- ish mode of life ; a distinction being drawn
tions have alike perished, with the work which between Hebraism, the religion of all godly
gave rise to them. men from the beginning, and Judaism, the
(9) Praeparatio Evangelica. —
So Eusebius temporary and special system of the Jews, so
himself calls a treatise, which more strictly that Christianity is a continuation of the
ought to have been called Praeparatio Demon- form.er, but a departure from the latter. In
strationis Evangelicae, for it is an introductory bk. ii. testimonies from the prophets shew that
treatise leading up to the two great phenomena of the Christian
(10) The Demonstratio Evangelica. These — —
Church had been long foretold the general
two treatises, in fact, are parts of one great ingathering of the Gentiles and the general
work. They are both dedicated to Theodotus, falling away of the Jews— so that the Chris-
"
an adherent of the Arian party, who was bp. tians " were only laying claim to their own
of Laodicea for some thirty years. (iii. I. i). Bk. iii. begins the main subject of
In the absence of more direct testimony, the treatise. He promises to speak of the
we may infer that these works were begun humanity of Christ, as corresponding to the
during the persecution, but not concluded till predictions of the prophets ; but the topics
some time after. The Preparation is extant are introduced in a desultory way {e.g. that
entire, and comprises 1 5 books. The Demonstra- Christ was not a sorcerer, that the Apostles
tion, on the other hand, is incomplete. It con- were not deceivers, etc.) without any very
sisted of 20 books, of which only the first ten are obvious connexion with the main theme.
extant in the MSS. The Preparation s]ieichcs Bks. iv. and v. pass on to the divinity of
briefly what the Gospel is, and then adverts Christ, both as the Son and as the Logos (see
to the common taunt that the Christians V. prooem. i. 2), this likewise having been
accept their religion by faith without investi- announced by the prophets. From bk. yi.
gation. The whole work is an answer to this onward to the end he treats of the Incarnation
taunt. The object of the Preparation is to and life a indvtJ-ia) of our Lord as a fulfilment of
justify the Christians in transferring their prophecv, and of the manner of Christ's appear-
allegiance from the religion and philosophy of ing, the place of His birth. His parentage and
the Greeks to the sacred books of the Hebrews. genealogy, the time of His advent and His
The object of the Demonstration is to shew works as in like manner foretold. In bk. x.,
from those sacred books themselves that the last which is extant, he reaches the Pas-
Christians did right in not stopping short at sion, treating of the traitor Judas and the
the religious practices and beliefs of the Jews, incidents of the Crucifixion. What were the
but in adopting a different mode of life. Thus topics of the remaining ten books we have no
the Preparation is an apology for Christianity data for determining, but may conjecture with
as against the Gentiles, while the Demonstra- Stein (p. 102) that they dealt with the burial,
tion defends it as against the Jews, and " yet resurrection, and ascension, and perhaps also
not," he adds, " against the Jews, nay, far with the foundation of the Christian church
from it, but rather for the Jews, if they would and the Second Advent. The extant fragment
learn wisdom." of bk. XV. relates to the four kingdoms of
In the first three books of the Preparation Daniel ii. Jerome (Comm. in Hos. Praef. Op.
he attacks the mythology of the heathen, vi. p. 18) speaks of Eusebius as " discussing
exposing its absurdity, and refutes the physio- some matters respecting the prophet Hosea
"
logical interpretations put upon the myths in bk. xviii.
; This great apologetic work ex-
in the next three he discusses the oracles, hibits the merits and defects which we find
and as connected therewith the sacrifices elsewhere in Eusebius the same greatness of
;

to demons and the doctrine of fate in the conception marred by inadequacy of execu-
;

third three explains the bearing of " the tion, the same profusion of learning combined
Hebrew Oracles," and adduces the testimony with inability to control his materials, which
of heathen writers in their favour in bks. we have seen in his History.
;
The topics are
X. xi. xii. and xiii. he remarks on the plagiar- not kept distinct yet this is probably the most
;

isms of the Greek philosophers from the important apologetic work of the early church.
Hebrews, dwelling on the priority of the Its frequent, forcible, and true conceptions,
Hebrew Scriptures, and shews how all that is more especially on the theme of " God in
best in Greek teaching and speculation agrees history," arrest our attention now, and must
with them in bk. xiv. he points to the con- have impressed his contemporaries still more
;

tradictions among Greek philosophers, shewing strongly while in learning and comprehen-
;

how the systems opposed to Christian belief siveness it is without a rival. It exhibits the
have been condemned by the wisest Gentile same wide acquaintance with Greek profane
philosophers themselves and lastly, in bk. writers which the History exhibits with Chris-
;

XV., he exposes the falsehoods and errors of tian literature. The number of writers quoted
the Greek systems of philosophy, more or referred to is astonishing (see Fabric. Btbl.
especially of the Peripatetics, Stoics, and Graec. vii. p. 346), the names of some being
328 EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA
only knownto us through Eusebius, while of restoration of peace to the church. The
several others he has preserved large portions persecution is over, and the persecutors have
not otherwise extant. He quotes not less met with their punishment (iii. 20, v. 52).
than 21 works of Plato, and gives more Polytheism is fast waning, and Christianity is
than 50 quotations from the Laws alone. The spreading everywhere (ii. 76, iii. 79).
impression produced by this mass of learning (15) On the Numerous Progeny of the An-
led Scaliger to call the work " divini com- cients. — This lost treatise is mentionedin Praep.
mentarii," and Cave " opus profecto nobilis- Ev. vii. 8. 29. It is doubtless the same work
simum " (H. L. i. p. 178). An admirable ed. to which St. Basil refers (de Spir. Sanct. 29,
of the Preparatiowaspuh. in 1903 at the Oxford Op. iii. p. 61) as Difficulties respecting the
Press under the learned and accurate editorship Polygamy of the Ancients. It would seem to
of the late Dr. Gifford, with trans, and notes. have been an apologetic work, as it seems to
(11) The Praeparatio Ecclesiastica ('EK/cXr;- have aimed at accounting for the polygamy
(TiaffTiKri Ilpoiraf>acrK€vr)) is not extant, nor of the patriarchs and the Jews generally, and
is (12) the Demonstratio Ecclesiastica ('E/ckXt?- reconciling it with the ascetic life, which in
ffLacTTiKT] 'Airodei^is), but both are mentioned his own time was regarded as the true ideal
by Photius {Bibl. 11, 12.) The nanaes suggest of Christian teaching. This problem occurs
that these two works aimed at doing for the again and again in his extant apologetic
society what the Praeparatio and Demonstratio writings. In the reference in the Praeparatio
Evangelica do for the doctrines of which the Eusebius speaks of having discussed in this
society is the depositary. work the notices of the lives of the patriarchs
(13) Two Books of Objection and Defence, only
and " their philosophic endurance and self-^
known from Photius (Bihl. 13). discipline," whether by way of direct narrative"
or of allegorical suggestion.
(14) The Divine Manifestation {Q€0(i)dveia).
in five books, was long supposed to be lost, C. Critical and Exegetical — i.e. all works
directed primarily to the criticism and eluci-
but fragments of the Greek original were
published by Mai from Vatican MSS. in his dation of the Scriptures.
Script. Vet. Nov. Coll. i. (1831), viii. (1833), (16) Biblical Texts. —
In his earlier years
and in 1842 the work was printed entire in a Eusebius was occupied in conjunction with
Syriac version by Dr. S. Lee, who in 1843 Pamphilus in the production of correct Greek
pub. an Eng. trans, with intro. and notes {Euse- texts of the O.T. A notice of his later years
bius, bp. of Caesarea, on the Theophania, etc., shews him engaged in a similar work {V. C.
Camb. 1843). By the aid of this version Mai iv. 36, 37). The emperor writes to Eusebius,
(a.d. 1847) in his Bibl. Nov. Patr. iv. p. 310 asking him to provide 50 copies of the Scrip-
(cf. p. no) rearranged his Greek fragments.
tures for use in the churches of Constantinople,
The subject is, as the name Theophania where the Christian population had largely
suggests, the manifestation of God in the multiplied. The manuscripts must be easily
Incarnation of the Divine Word. The con- legible and handy for use, written on carefully
tents are : (i) An account of the subject and
prepared parchment, and transcribed by skil-
the recipients of the revelation. The doctrine ful caligraphers. He has already written, he
of the Word of God is insisted upon, His adds, to the procurator-general lKaOo\iK6s) of
person and working set forth. Polytheist the district { ttjs SioiKriaews), charging him to
and pantheist are alike at fault. The Word furnish Eusebius with the necessary appli-
is essentially one. His relation to creation, ances and has placed at his disposal two
and especially to man, and the pre-eminence, public waggons to convey the manuscripts,
characteristics, destiny, and fall of man are when complete, to the new metropolis. Euse-
dealt with, (ii) The necessity of the revelation. bius executes the commission. The manu-
The human race was degraded by gross scripts were arranged, he tells us, in ternions
idolatry with its accompanying immoralities. and quaternions (rpicraa nai TtTpaa-ffd) and care-
The philosophers could not rescue it. Plato fully prepared at great cost. The emperor
had the clearest sense of the truth, yet even wrote expressing his satisfaction with them.
he was greatly at fault. Meanwhile the (17) Sections and Canons, with the Letter to
demons had maddened man-
of polytheism —
Carpianus prefixed. Eusebius explains the
kind, as shewn by human sacrifices and the origin and method of these sections and
prevalence of wars. The demons, too, had canons in the prefatory letter. Ammonius of
shewn their powerlossness they could not
;
Alexandria (c. 220) had constructed a Har-
defend their temples or foresee their over- mony or Diatessaron of the Gospels. He
throw, (iii) The proof of the revelation. Its took St. Matthew as his standard, and placed
excellency and power is seen in its effects. side by side with it the parallel passages from
For this it was necessary that the Word should the other tliree. The work of Ammonius
be incarnate, put to death, and rise again. suggested to Eusebius the plan which he
The change which has come over mankind in adopted, but Eusebius desired to preserve the
consequence is set forth, (iv) The proof of the continuity of all the narratives. He therefore
revelation, from the fulfilment of Christ's words divided each gospel separately into sections,
— His prophecies respecting the extension of which he numbered continuously, and con-
His kingdom, the trials of His church, the structed a table of ten canons, containing lists
destinies of His servants, and the fate of of passages :canon i, common to all the
the Jews, (v) The common heathen objection four evangelists canon ii, common to Mat-
;

that Christ was a sorcerer and a deceiver, thew, Mark, Luke canon iii, common to
;

achieving His results by magic, is answered. Matthew, Luke, John canon iv, common to
;

The place of writing of the Theophania is Matthew, Mark, John; canon v, common
Caesarea (iv. 6), and it was plainly written to Matthew and Luke canon vi, common to ;

after the triumph of Constantine and the Matthew and Mark canon vii, common to
;

EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA 329

Matthew and John canon viii, common to


; exhibits the same characteristics as the Com-
Luke and Mark canon ix, common to Luke
;
mentary on the Psalms. Jerome is largely
and John canon x, passages peculiar to a
;
indebted to Eusebius, whom he sometimes
single evangelist, so that this last canon con- translates almost word for word without
tains four separate lists. The sections of the acknowledgment. Eusebius occasionally in-
several gospels were numbered in black, and serts interesting traditions on the authority
beneath each such number was a secondnumber of a Hebrew teacher e.g. that Shebna be-
:

in vermilion, specifying the canon to which the came high-priest and betrayed the people to
section belonged. By turning to the canon Sennacherib that Hezekiah was seized with
;

so specified, the reader would see the numbers sickness for not singing God's praises, like
of the parallel sections in the other evangelists. Moses and Deborah, after his victory.
For the history of the sections and canons Sometimes he gives Christian traditions e.g. :

in the MSS. see Scrivener's Introd. to the that Judas Iscariot was of the tribe of
Criticism of the N.T., pp. 54 seq. and passim. Ephraim. This commentary is mentioned by
The sections and canons are marked in many Procopius in his preface, and is freely used by
editions of the Gk. Test., e.g. those of Tischen- him and by later Greek commentators.
dorf and Tregelles. (22) Commentary on St. Luke's Gospel. — Not
(18) Under the head of Biblical exegesis mentioned by Jerome or Photius. Some
may be ranged several togographical works extracts remain.
undertaken at the instance of Paulinus, bp. (23) Cornmentary on I. Corinthians. — Such
of Tyre. (a) Interpretation of the Ethno- a work seems to be implied by Jerome's
logical Terms in the Hebrew Scriptures ; (b) language, Ep. xlix., though he does not men-
Chorography of Ancient Judaea, with the tion it in his Catalogue.
Inheritances of the Ten Tribes ; (c) A Plan (24) Commentaries on other Books of Scrip-
of Jerusalem and of the Temple. —
This was ture. Extracts are given from, or mention is
accompanied with memoirs relating to the made of, commentaries on Proverbs, Song of
different localities, (d) On the Names of Songs. Daniel, Hebrews, and several other books
Places in Holy Scripture, entitled in the head (see Fabric, op. cit. p. 399). It is doubtful,
of Jerome's version de Situ et Nominibus however, whether such extracts (even when
Locorum Hebraicorum, but elsewhere {Vir. genuine) are from continuous commentaries
III. 81) Topica. The first three, which perhaps or from exegetical or dogmatical works.
should be regarded as parts of the same work, (25) On the Discrepancies of the Gospels.

are mentioned in the preface to the fourth, This work consists of two parts, really separate
which alone is extant. All were written at the works, and quoted as such (i)
: Questions
instance of Paulinus, to whom (d) is dedicated. and Solutions on the Genealogy of the Saviour,
This last professes to give alphabetically " the addressed to Stephanus ; (ii) Questions and
designations of the cities and villagesmentioned Solutions concerning the Passion and Resur-
in Holy Scripture in their original language," rection of the Saviour, addressed to Marinus.
with a description of thelocalityandthemodern The difficulties do not always turn upon
names. —
The names are transliterated with discrepancies e.g. he discusses the question
various success from the Hebrew. The value of why Thamar is mentioned, and difficulties
this treatise arises from the close acquaintance with respect to Bathsheba and Ruth. But
which Eusebius had with the geography of the discrepancies occupy a sufficiently large
Palestine in his own day. The work had space to give the name to the whole. The
already been translated into Latin by some work exhibits the characteristic hesitation of
unskilful hand before Jerome's time, but so Eusebius in a somewhat aggravated form.
unsatisfactorily that he undertook a new ver- Alternative solutions are frequently offered,
sion. He omitted some important notices and and he does not decide between them. But it
made several changes, justified by his personal is suggestive and fiill of interest. It is valuable
knowledge of Palestine. also as preserving large fragments of Africanus,
(19) On the Nomenclature of the Book of the besides some important notices, such as the
Prophets. — This work contains a brief account absence of Mark xvi. 9-16 from the most
of the several prophets and the subjects of numerous and best MSS. From this storehouse
their prophecies, beginning with the minor of information later harmonists plundered
prophets and following the order of the LXX. freely, often without acknowledgment.
(20) In Psalmos, a continuous commentary D. Doctrinal. — (26) General Elementary
on the Psalms, which stands in antiquity and
intrinsic merit in the first rank of patristic
Introduction. —
Five fragments of this work
have been published by Mai. All deal with
commentaries. The historical bearing of the analogous topics, having reference to general
several psalms is generally treated sensibly ;
principles of ethics, etc. It seems to have
the theological and mystical interpretations been a general introduction to theology, and
betray the extravagance common to patristic its contents were very miscellaneous, as the
exegesis. The value of the work is largely extant remains shew.
increased by frequent extracts from the
Hexaplaric versions and by notices respecting
(27) Prophetical Extracts.— This work con-
tains prophetical passages from O.T. relating
the text and history of the Psalter. The to our Lord's person and work, with explan-
author possessed some acquaintance with atory comments, and comprises four books,
Hebrew, though not always sufficient to of which the first is devoted to the historical
prevent mistakes. This cornmentary had a books, the second to the Psalms, the third
great reputation, and was translated into to the remaining poetical books and the other
Latin within a very few years of its publication prophets, the fourth to Isaiah. The author
by Eusebius of Vercellae. explains that his main object is to shew that
(21) Commentary on Isaiah. —This work the prophets spoke of Jesus Christ as the pre-
330 EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA
existent Word, Who is " a second cause of the Scripture is against him. Having done this,
universe and God and Lord," and that they he will expound the true theology respecting
predicted His two advents. Thus the per- our Saviour, as it has been handed down in
sonality of the Logos is here the leading idea the church from the beginning. Thus, as ex-
in his treatment of the prophecies. plained by its author, the aim of this second
(28) Defence of Origen.— This was the joint treatise is refutation, as that of the first was
work of Pamphilus and Eusebius. The original exposure. The first was mainly personal, the
has perished, but the first book survives in second is chiefly dogmatical.
the translation of Rufinus (printed in Origen, The two treatises were first edited by bp.
Op. iv. App. pp. 17 seq. Delarue). Eusebius R. Montague (Montacutius) with trans, and
{H. £. vi. 3 says that the work was undertaken
) notes (Paris, 1628) at the end of the Detnon-
to refute " captious detractors " ;
probably strafio, and this ed. was reprinted( Lips. 1688).
referring especially to Methodius, who had The best ed. is that of Gaisford (Oxf. 1852),
written two works against Origen (Hieron. Vir. where they are in the same vol. with the work
III. 93 ;Socr. H. E. vi. 13) and was attacked by .i gainst Hierocles. He revised the text and
name in the sixth book (Hieron. c. Riifin. i. 11). reprinted the trans, and notes of Montague.
It was dedicated to the confessors of Palestine, The fragments of Marcellus are collected by
especially Patermuthius (Phot. Bibl. 118), who Rettberg (Marcelliana, Getting. 1794). The
was martyred the year after Pamphilus (Eus. monographs on Marcellus, especially Zahn's
Mart. Pal. 13). The first book contains an M. von Ancyra (Gotha, 1867), are useful aids.
exposition of Origen's principles, especially (31) On the Paschal Festival. — Eusebius [Vit.
of his doctrines respecting the Trinity and the Const, iv. 35, 36) states that he addressed to
Incarnation then nine special charges against
;
Constantine "a
mystical explanation of the~
him are refuted, relating to the nature of significance of the festival," upon which the
Christ, the resurrection of the dead, metem- emperor wrote (c. 335), expressing himself
psychosis, etc. In one of the later books the greatly deUghted, and saying that it was a
doctrine of fatalism was discussed (Rutin. difficult undertaking " to expound in a be-
Apol. i. II, in Hieron. Op. ii. p. 582). Else- coming way the reason and origin of the
where also it was shewn that Origen in his Paschal festival, as well as its profitable and
mystical explanation of Adam and Eve, as painful consummation." A long fragment of
referring to Christ and the church, only fol- this treatise was discovered and published by
lowed the traditional interpretation (Socr. H. Mai. The recovered fragment contains (i) :

E. iii. 7). In the same spirit precedents were A declaration of the figurative character of the
quoted for his doctrines of the pre-existence Jewish Passover. (2) An account of its in-
of the soul and the restitution of all things stitution and of the ceremonial itself. (3) An
(Anon. Synod. Ep. 198). The Apology also explanation of the typical significance of the
contained a full account of the life of Origen different parts of the ceremonial, with refer-
(Phot. Bibl. 118). Eusebius himself refers to ence to their Christian counterparts. (4) A
bk. ii. for accounts of the controversy about brief statement of the settlement of the ques-
Origen's ordination to the priesthood and his tion at Nicaea. (5) An argument that Chris-
contributions to sacred letters {H. E. vi. 23), tians are not bound to observe the time of the
and to bk. vi. for the letters which Origen Jewish festival, mainly because it was not the
wrote to Fabianus and others in defence of his Jewish Passover which our Lord Himself kept.
orthodoxy {ib. 36), and to the work generally E. Orations and Sermons. —
(32) At the
for the part taken by Origen in theological Dedication of the Church in Tyre. —
This oration
controversy {ib. 33). Socrates {H. E. iv. 27) is inserted by Eusebius in his History (x. 4.)
states that the panegyric of Gregory Thauma- The new basilica at Tyre was a splendid
turgus on Origen was given in this Apology. building, and Eusebius addresses Paulinus, the
(29) Against Marcellns, bp. of Ancyra, in bishop, as a Bezalcel, a Solomon, a Zerubbabel,

two books. The occasion of writing is ex- a new Aaron or Molchizedek. He applies to
plained by Eusebius himself (c. Marc. ii. 4, the occasion the predictions of the Jewish
pp. 55 seq.). Marcellus had been condemned prophets foretelling the rebuilding of the
for Sabellianism, and deposed by a synod of temple and the restoration of the polity. He
Constantinople (a.d. 336), composed chiefly gives thanks for the triumph of Christ, the
of the Arian friends of Eusebius. This work Word of (iod. Who has proved mightier than
was undertaken at the wish of these friends to the mightiest of kings. This magnificent
justify the decision. Certain persons con- temple, which has arisen from the ruins of its
sidered that Marcellus had been unfairly predecessor, is a token of His power. Then
treated, and Eusebius, being partly respon- follows an elaborate description of the building,
sible for the decision, felt bound to uphold its which, continues the orator, is a symbol of the
justice. The work aims simply at exposing spiritual church of Tyre, of the spiritual
the views of Marcellus. [Marcellus (4).] church throughout the world, in its history,
(30) On the Theology of the Church, a Refu- its overthrow, its desolation, its re-erection
tation of Marcellus, in three books. — Eusebius on a more splendid scale, and in the arrange-
hadat first thought it sufticient merely to expose ment of its several parts. But the spiritual
the opinions of Marcellus, leaving them to con- church on earth is itself only a faint image of
demn themselves. But on reflection, fearing the heavenly Zion, where adoring hosts un-
some might be drawn away " from the
lest ceasingly sing the praises of their King.
theology of the church " by their very length (33) At the Vicennalia of Constantine, a.d.
and pretentiousness, he undertook to refute 325. —
This oration, which is not extant, is
them, and to shew that no single Scripture mentioned Vit. Const, prooem. iii. 11. It
favours the view of Marcellus, but that, seems to have been the opening address at the
according to the approved interpretations, all council of Nicaea, see supra.
EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA 331

(34) On the Sepulchre of the Saviour, a.d. correctly Euphrasion), bp. of Balanea in Syria,
335. — This is mentioned Vit. Const, iv. 33, a strong opponent of the Arians (Athan. de
Fug. 3, Op. i. p. 254 Hist. Ar. ad Mon. 5, ib.
46 seq. The circumstances of its delivery have ;

been already described. It has been lost. p. 274), who was present at the council of
(35) At the Tricennalia of Constantine, a.d. Nicaea. Athanasius refers to this letter as

335 or 336. This oration is commonly called declaring plainly that Christ is not true God
de Laudibus Constantini. The orator, taking {de Synod. 17, Op. i. p. 584). An extract (con-
occasion from the festival, speaks of the taining the passage to which doubtless Athan-
Almighty Sovereign, and the Divine Word asius refers) is quoted at the second council
through Whom He administers the universe of Nicaea {I.e.). It insists strongly on the
(§ i). The emperor is a sort of reflection of subordination of the Son.
the Supreme Word- The monarchy on earth (40) To Constantia Augusta {Op. ii. 1545),
is the counterpart of that in heaven (§§ 2, 3). the sister of Constantine and wife of Licinius,
The Word the interpreter of the Invisible
is who was closely allied with the Arians. Con-
God in things (§ 4).
all An emperor who, stantia had asked Eusebius to send her a
like Constantine, is sensible of his depend- certain likeness of Christ, of which she had
ence on God, is alone fit to rule (§ 5). Periods heard. He rebukes her for the request, saying
and divisions of time are from God, as that such representations are inadequate in
is all order throughout the universe. The themselves and tend to idolatry. He states
number thirty (3 x 10) has a special symbolic that a foolish woman had brought him two
significance, reminding us of the kingdom of likenesses, which might be philosophers, but
glory (§ 6). The powers of wickedness and the were alleged by her to represent St. Paul and
sufferings of the saints were ended by Con- the Saviour. He had detained them lest they
stantine, the champion and representative of should prove a stumbling-block to her or to
God (§ 7). He waged war against idolatry, others. He reminds Constantia that St. Paul
profligacy, and superstition (§ 8). What a declares his intention of " knowing Christ no
change has been suddenly wrought The
! longer after the flesh." This letter was
false gods did not foresee their fate. The quoted by the Iconoclasts, and this led their
emperor, armed with piety, overthrew them. opponents to rake up all the questionable
Churches rise from the ground everywhere expressions in his writings, that they might
(§ 8). The truth is proclaimed far and wide blacken his character for orthodoxy.
(§ 9).
" Come now, most mighty victor (41) To the Church of Caesarea, written from
Constantine," says the orator, " let me lay Nicaea (a.d. 325) during or immediately after
before thee the mysteries of sacred doctrines the council to vindicate his conduct. This
in this royal discourse concerning the Supreme letter is preserved by Athanasius as an
King of the Universe." Accordingly he speaks appendix to the de Decrct. Syn. Nic. {Op. i.
of the person and working of the Divine Word, p. 187; cf. § 3, ib. p. 166) in Socr. H. E.
;

as mediator in the creation and government of i. 8 in Theod. H. E. \, 11


; in Gelasius Cyz.
;

the universe. Polytheism is condemned. As Hist. Cone. Nic. ii. 34 seq. (Labbe, Cone. ii.
God is one, so His Word is one (§§ 11, 12). 264 seq. ed. Colet.) in the Historia Tripar-
;

Humanity, led astray by demons and steeped tita, ii. II and in Niceph. H. E. viii. 22. A
;

in ignorance and sin, needed the advent of the passage towards the end (§§ 9, 10) which
Word (§ 13). It was necessary too that He savours strongly of Arianism is wanting in
should come clothed in a body (§ 14). His Socrates and in the Historia Tripartita, but
death and resurrection also were indispensable appears in the other authorities, and seems
for the redemption of men (§ 15). The power certainly to be referred to by Athanasius in
of the Divine Word was evinced by the two places {de Deer. Syn. Nic. 3, I.e. de
;

establishment of the church and the spread of Synod. 13, Op. i. p. 581). It is condemned,
the gospel (§ 16). It was manifested in our however, by Bull (Def. Fid. Nic. iii. 9. 3) and
own time by the faith of the martyrs, by the Cave {Diss. Tert. in J oh. Cleric, p. 58, printed
triumph of the church over oppression, and at the end of his Hist. Lit. vol. ii.) as a spurious
by the punishment of the persecutors (§ 17). addition, probably inserted by some Arian.
We have evidence of the divine origin of our The letter is translated and annotated by
faith in the prophetic announcements of Newman in Select Treatises of St. Athanasius,
Christ's coming, and in the fulfilment of His pp. 59 seq. (Oxf. 1853).
own predictions more especially in the
; In reviewing the literary history of Euse-
coincidence in time between the establishment bius, we are struck first of all with the range
of the Roman empire and the publication of and extent of his labours. His extant works,
the Gospel (§ 18). voluminous as they are, must have formed
(36) In Praise of the Martyrs. —
This discourse somewhat less than half his actual writings.
is short and of little value but the orator
; No field of theological learning is untouched.
mentions, among those whom he invites his He is historian, apologist, topographer, exe-
hearers to commemorate, almost every bishop gete, critic, preacher, dogmatic writer, in turn,
of Antioch from the end of the 2nd cent, to and, if permanent utility may be taken as a
his own time, so that it would seem to have test of literary excellence, Eusebius will hold
been delivered at Antioch. a very high place indeed. The Ecclesiastical
(37) On the Failure of Rain, mentioned by History is absolutely unique and indispens-
Ebedjesu, but apparently not elsewhere. able. The Chronicle is a vast storehouse of
F. Letters. —
(38) To Alexander, bp. of information as to ancient monarchies. The
Alexandria, on behalf of Arius and his Preparation and Demonstration are the most
friends, complaining that they have been important contributions to theology in their
misrepresented. own province. Even minor works, such as
(39) To Euphration (sometimes written in- the Martyrs of Palestine, the Life of Ccnstan-
332 EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA
tine, the Questions addressed Stephanus and moderation of temper fitted him beyond most
to
to Marinus, and others, would leave an ir- of his contemporaries for tracing their con-
reparable blank if they were obliterated. flicts and coincidences. Like St. Paul on
His more technical treatises have the same Mars' Hill, he sought the elements of truth in
permanent value. The Canons and Sections pre-existing philosophical systems or popular
have not been superseded for their particular religions and thus obtaining a foothold,
;

purpose. The Topography of Palestine is the worked onward in his assault upon paganism.
most important contribution to our knowledge The Greek apologists of the 2nd and 3rd
in its own department. In short, no ancient cents, all, without exception, took up this
ecclesiastical writer has laid posterity under position. Eusebius, through his illustrious
heavier obligations than has Eusebius by his spiritual ancestors, Origen and Pamphilus,
great erudition. In the History, Chronicle, had inherited this tradition from Alexandria.
and Preparation, he has preserved a vast It was the only method which could achieve
amount of early literature in three several success in apologetics while Christianity stood
spheres, which would otherwise have been face to face with still powerful forms of
irrecoverably lost. Moreover, he deserves the heathen worship. It is the only method which
highest credit for his keen insight as to what can hope for victory now, when once again
would have permanent interest. He, and he the Gospel is confronted with the widespread
only, has preserved the past in all its phases, religions of India and the farther East.
in history, in doctrine, in criticism, even in If we may judge from the silence of his

topography, for the instruction of the future. contemporaries and silence in this case is

This is his real title to greatness. As an an important witness Eusebius commanded
expositor of facts, an abstract thinker, or a general respect by his personal character;
master of style, it would be absurd to compare With the single exception of the taunt of
him with the great names of classical anti- Potammon, mentioned already, not a word of
quity. His merits and his faults have been accusation is levelled against him in an age
already indicated. His gigantic learning was when theological controversy was peculiarly
his master rather than his slave. He had reckless and acrimonious. His relations to
great conceptions, which he was unable Pamphilusshew a strongly affectionate disposi-
adequately to carry out. He had valuable tion and it is more than probable that he was
;

detached thoughts, but fails in continuity of drawn into those public acts from which his re-
argument. He was most laborious, yet most putation has suffered most by the loyalty of
desultory. He accumulated materials with private friendship. His moderation is especially
great diligence ; but was loose, perfunctory, praised by the emperor Constantine and his ;

and uncritical in their use. His style is speculative opinions, as well as his personal
especially vicious. When his theme seems to acts, bear out this commendation. His was a
hira to demand a lofty flight of rhetoric, as in life which was before all things laborious and
his Life of Constantine, his language becomes self-denying. He was not only the most learned
turgid and unnatural. and prolific writer of his age but he adminis-
;

He is before all things an apologist. His tered the affairs of an important diocese, and
great services in this respect are emphasized took an active part in all great questions which
by Evagrius [H. E. i. i, ireiBnv olos re elvai agitated the church.
Tovs ivTvyxo^vovras Op-qcrKiveiv rd. rj/jLirtpa);
His admiration for Constantine may be
and doubtless his directly apologetic writings excessive, but is not difficult to understand.
were much more effective than at this distance Constantine was unquestionably one of the
of time we can realize. Whatever subject he very greatest emperors of Rome. His com-
touches, his thoughts seem to pour instinctive- manding personality must have been irresist-
ly into this same channel. If he treats of ible and is enhanced by his deference to-
;

chronology, a main purpose is to shew the wards the leading Christian bishops. He
superior antiquity of the Hebrew oracles to carried out a change in the relations between
the wisdom of the Greeks. If he writes a the church and the state incomparably great-
history of the church, it is because he sees in er than any before or after. Eusebius de-
the course of events a vindication of the lighted to place Augustus and Constantine in
Divine Word. Even in an encomium of a juxtaposition. During the one reign the Word
sovereign, he soars aloft at once into the region had appeared in the flesh ; during the other
of theology, for he sees in the subject of his He had triumphed over the world. The one
panegyric the instrument of a higher power reign was the counterpart and complement of
for the fulfilment of a divine economy. In the other.
so essentially technical a task as the division A discussion of the theological opinions of
of the Gospels into sections, his underlying Eusebius is impossible within our limits.
desire is to vindicate the essential unity of the Readers are referred to Baronius {ad ann. 340,
evangelical narratives against gainsayers. c. 38 seq.), Petavius (Dogm. Theol. de Trin.
This character as an apologist was due partly lib. i. cap. xi. seq.), Montfaucon (Praelim- in
to the epoch in which he lived, and partly to Comm. ad Psalm, c. vi.), and Tillemont (H. E.
his individual temper and circumstances. vii. pp. 67 seq.) among those who have assailed,
He stood, as it were, on the frontier line and Bull (Def. Fid. Nic. ii. 9. 20, iii. 9. 3, 11),
between two ages, with one foot in the Hel- Cave {Hist. Lit. ii. app. pp. 42 seq.), and Lee
lenism of the past and the other in the {Theophania, pp. xxiv. seq.) among those who
Christianity of the future, and by his very have defended his opinions, from the orthodox
position was constrained to discuss their point of view. A convenient summary of the
mutual relations. He was equally learned in controversy will be found in Stein, pp. 117 seq.
the wisdom of the Greeks and in the Scrip- His orthodoxy cannot be hastily denied. Dr.
tures, while his breadth of sympathy and Newman, who cannot be accused of unduly
EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA EUSEBIUS OF CAESAREA 333
favouring Eusebius, says that " in his own While the Arian controversy was still fresh*
writings, numerous as they are, there is very the part taken by Eusebius was remembered
little which fixes on Eusebius any charge, against him in the Greek church, and the
beyond that of attachment to the Platonic orthodox Fathers are generally depreciatory.
phraseology. Had he not connected himself But as the direct interest of the dispute wore
with the Arian party, it would have been un- out, the tide tiurned and set in his favour.
just to have suspected him of heresy " {Arians, Hence from the 5th cent, onwards we find a
p. 262). If we except the works written before disposition to clear him of any complicity in
the council of Nicaea, in which there is oc- Arian doctrine. Thus Socrates (H. E. ii. 21)
casionall}' much looseness of expression, his is at some pains to prove him orthodox ; and
language is for the most part strictly orthodox, Gelasius of Cyzicus {H. S. N. ii. i) stoutly
or at least capable of explanation in an defends this " most noble tiller of ecclesiastical
orthodox sense. Against the two main theses husbandry," this " strict lover of truth " 6
of Arius, (i) that the Word was a creature (piXaXrjdecrTaros) and says that if there be any
,

(KTiafia) like other creatures, and (2) that there suggestion, however faint, of Arian heresy
was a time when He was not, Eusebius is (/j.iKp'iv Ti tA 'Apeiov inrovovfieva) in his sayings
explicit on the orthodox side (e.g. 4, c. Marc. i. or writings, it was due to " the inadvertence of
p. 22, lie Eccl. Theol. i. 2, 3, pp. 61 seq., ib. i. simplicity," and that Eusebius himself pleaded
8, 9, 10, pp. 66 seq.). He states in direct lan- this excuse in self-defence. Accordingly he
guage that the Word had no beginning represents him as a champion of orthodoxy
(Theoph. ii. 3, cf. de Laud. Const. 2). If against Arian opponents. The tide turned
elsewhere he represents the Father as prior to again at the second council of Nicaea. As
the Son (e.g. Dem. Ev. iv. 3. 5, 6 5^ TraxTjp the Iconoclasts alleged his authority for their
Trpo'vTrdpx€L rod vlov Kal rrjs yeveaeui avrov views, the opposite party sought to disparage
TTpov<pi(TT7)Kev), this priority is not necessarily him. " His own books," says Photius, " cry
intended to be temporal, and his meaning aloud that he is convicted of Arianism " [Ep.
must be interpreted by his language in other 73). A lasting injury was inflicted on his
passages. Nor, again, do such expressions as reputation by dragging him into the Icono-
" second existence," " second cause," neces- clastic dispute. In the Latin church he
sarily bear an Arian sense for they may be
; fared somewhat better. Jerome indeed
taken to imply that subordination which has stigmatizes the teacher to whom he was more
ever been recognized by the orthodox. But largely indebted than perhaps to any other
though his language might pass muster, " his as " the chief of the Arians," " the standard-
acts," it is said, " are his confession." This bearer of the Arian faction," " the most
is the strongest point in the indictment. His flagrant champion of the impiety of Arius."
alliance with the Arian party is indisputable ;
But the eminent services of Eusebius to
but the inference drawn ifrom it may be Christian literature carried the day in the
questioned. He may have made too great western church. Two popes successively
concessions to friendship. His natural temper vindicated his reputation. Gelasius declined
suggested toleration, and the cause of the to place his History and Chronicle on the list
Arians was, or seemed to be, the cause of of proscribed works (Decret. de Libr. Apocr. 4).
comprehension, and he had a profound and Pelagius II., when defending him, says :

rooted aversion to the Sabellianism of Marcellus " Holy Church weigheth the hearts of her
and others, who were acting with Athanasius. faithful ones with kindliness rather than their
Where we have no certain information as to words with rigour" (Ep. 5. 921). Neither
motives, it seems only fair to accept his own Gelasius nor Pelagius refers directly to the
statements with respect to his opinions.* charge of Arianism. The offence which
seemed to them to require apology was his
* " The remark has been made," writes Dr. New- defence of the heretic Origen.
man (Arians, p. 263), "that throughout his Eccle- A more remarkable fact still is the canon-
siastical History, no instance occurs of his expressing
ization of Eusebius, notwithstanding his real
abhorrence of the superstitions of Paganism," and
that his custom is either to praise, or not to blame, or supposed Arian opinions. In an ancient
such heretical writers as fall under his notice. Syrian Martyrology, translated from the
Nothing could be more erroneous as a statement Greek, and already referred to, he takes his
of facts than Dr. Newman's language here. Even if rank among the honoured martyrs and con-
it had been true, that there is no abhorrence of
fessors of the church. Nor was it only in the
paganism expressed in the History, great parts of the
Praeparatio and Theophania, the Tricennial Oration
East that this honour awaited him. In the
and the Life of Constantine, are an elaborate indict- Martyrologium Hieronymianitm for xi. Kal.
ment of the superstitions and horrors of heathendom Jul. we find the entry " In Caesarea Cappa-
dociae depositio sancti Eusebii " (Hieron. Op.
;
so that the comparative silence in the History must
be explained by the fact that this was not, except xi. 578). The person intended was Eusebius,
incidentally, his theme. On the attitude of Eusebius the predecessor of St. Basil [Eusebius (24)],
towards heresies, Newman's statement is still wider
of the mark.
as the addition " Cappadociae " shews, but
It is difficult to see how language could
surpass such expressions as, e.g., i i,
the transcendent fame of the Eusebius of the
i. ; ii. 13 ; iii.
26, 27, 28, 29, 32 iv. 7, 29, 30
; V. 13, 14, 16-20,
;
other Caesarea eclipsed this comparatively
etc. " grievous wolves," " most abominable heresy,"
, obscure person and finally obliterated his
"like a pestilent and scabby disease," "incurable name from the Latin calendars. The word
and dangerous poison," "most foul heresy, over- " Cappadociae " disappeared. In Usuard the
shooting anything that could exist or be conceived,
more abominable than all shame," " double-mouthed notice becomes " In Caesarea Palestinae sancti
and two-headed serpent," "like venomous reptiles," Eusebii historiographi " (with a v. I.) and in
;

'loathsome evil-deeds " these and similar expres-


:
old Latin martyrologies, where he is not dis-
sions form the staple of his language when he comes tinctly specified, the historian Eusebius is
athwart a heresy. doubtless understood. Accordingly, in several
"

iu GUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS
Gallican service-books the historian is com- the Virgin). This bold assertion of the faith
memorated as a saint (see Valois, Testitnonia caused great excitement in the church.
pro Eusebio) ; and in the Martyrologium (Cyril. Alex. adv. Nestor, i. 20 in Migne, vol.
Romanum itself he held his place for many ix. p. 41 D ; Marius Mercator, pars ii. lib. i. ;

centuries. In the revision of this Martyrology Patr. Lat. xlviii. p. 769 b.) This was certainly,
under Gregory XIII. his name was struck out, as Theophanes {Chron. p. 76) expressly says,
and Eusebius of Samosata substituted, under our Eusebius, who thus was the first to oppose
the mistaken idea that Caesarea had been the Nestorian heresy (Evagr. Hist. i. 9 in
substituted for Samosata by a mistake. The Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi. 2445). He was also the first
Martyrologium Hieronymianum, which con- to protest against the heretical utterances of
tained the true key to the error, had not then Anastasius, the syncellus of Nestorius (Theo-
been discovered. The Eccl. Hist., according phan. Chron. p. 76). He was a " rhetor
to the text of Burton, with intro. by Dr. (Evagr. I.e.) distinguished in legal practice
Bright, is pub. by Oxf. Univ. Press, and a (Leont. Byzant. cont. Nestor, et Eutych. lib.
valuable Eng. trans, both of the History and of iii. in Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi. 1389) and an " agens
the Life of Constantine by Dr. McGiffert is in in rebus " to the court (Gesta de Nam. Acacii,
the Post-Nicene Lib. of the Fathers. A cheap cap. i. in Galland. Biblioth. x. 667 cf. Tillem.
;

trans, with life, notes, chronol. table, etc., is in xiv. n. xi. on Cyril of Alex.). Theophanes [I.e.)
Bohn's Library (Bell). The works of Eusebius calls him a crxoXao-rt/cos of the empress.
have been ed. by T. Gaisford (Clar. Press, After the sermon of St. Proclus against
9 vols.); and a revised text of the Evang. Nestorius, and before the orthodox had
Prep, with notes and Eng. trans, by E. H. separated from the communion of Nestorius,"
Gifford (Clar. Press, 4 vols.). The Bodleian MS. in consequence of the council of Ephesus,
of Jerome's version of the CArowtc/^ of Eusebius there appeared, fixed in a public place, a
has been reproduced in collotype with intro. by document exposing the identity of Nestorius's
J. K. Fotheringham (Clar. Pressj [l.] doctrine with that of Paul of Samosata. This
Eusebius (24), bp. of Caesarea in Cappadocia, document common opinion attributed to
by whom Basil the Great was ordained to the Eusebius (Leont. Byzant. M.S.). It begins by
presbyterate. Eusebius was a layman, and conjuring its readers to make its contents
unbaptized at the time of his elevation to the known or give a copy of it to all bishops,
episcopate, a.d. 362. On the death of Dianius, clergy, and laity in Constantinople. It draws
the church of Caesarea was divided into two out the parallel between the doctrines of
nearly equal factions, and the choice of a lay- Nestorius and Paul of Samosata, who both
man universally known and respected was the deny that the child born of Mary was the
readiest way out of the dilemma. Military Eternal Word ;and ends with an anathema
force had to be employed to overcome his on him who denies the identity of the Only-
reluctance and to compel the prelates to begotten of the Father and the child of Mary.
consecrate. No sooner were they free than Eusebius must have been a priest at the time
the bishops endeavoured to declare their when St. Cyril wrote his five books against
consecration of Eusebius void. But the Nestorius (Cyril. Alex. u.s. —so much is implied
counsels of the elder Gregory of Nazianzus in the TfXuJc ^ri iv XaiKois), i.e. c. 430. He
prevailed (Greg. Naz. Orat. xix. 36, pp. 308, was certainly bp. of Dorylaeum in 448. He
309). Eusebius jiroved a very respectable himself states thathewaspoor (Labbe, Cohc. iv.
prelate, but quite unequal to the circumstances 221 D.). Common hostility to Nestorius had
of severe trial in which he soon found himself. hitherto united Eusebius and Eutyches but ;

One of the earliest acts of his episcopate was about this time Eusebius, perceiving the hereti-
to ordain Basil priest. Acoldness grew up cal tendencies of his friend, frequently visited
between Eusebius and Basil, leading to Basil's him, and exhorted him to reconsider his ways
three years' retirement to Pontus. [Basilius [ib. 154 d). Finding him immovable, Eusebius
OF Caesarea.] (Greg. Naz. Orat. xx. §§ 51-53 ;
presented a " libellus " against Eutyches at a
Ep. 19, 20, 169, 170.) In 366 Basil returned council at Constantinople under Flavian,
to Caesarea. Each had learnt wisdom from Nov. 8,448 (ib. 151). He deplores the persist-
the past (Greg. Naz. Orat. xx. §§ 57-59), and ency of Eutyches in error, and demands that
harmonious relations existed unbroken to the he should be summoned before the council
death of Eusebius, a.d. 370. to answer charges of heresy. His petition
Fleury states that Eusebius is reckoned by was granted, though with unwillingness. At
some as a martyr (Fleury, xv. 13, 14 xvi. 9,
; the second session of the council (Nov. 12),
14, 17), but Usuard probably confounds Euse- Eusebius requested that the second letter of
bius of Cappadocia with Eusebius the historian. St. Cyril to Nestorius and his letter to John of
See Papebrochius in A A. SS. Boll. Jun. iv. Antioch should be read as representing the
75 and on the other side, Tilleni. Mem. vii. 39.
; standard of orthodoxy. This led to a pro-
[Eusebius of Caesarea.] [e.v.] fession of the orthodox faith from Flavian,
Eusebius (S*), bp. of Dorylaeumin Phrygia assented to by the other bishops. At the
Salutaris, the constant supporter of orthodoxy third session (Nov. 15) Eusebius found that
against Nestorius and Eutyches alike. About Eutyches had refused to come, alleging a
Christmas a.d. 428, when Nestorius was assert- determination never to quit his monastery,
ing his heresy in a sermon at Constantinople, and saying that Eusebius had been for some
there stood up in church a layman of excellent time (irdXai) his enemy. [Eutyches (4).]
character, distinguished for erudition and Only on the third summons was he induced
orthodox zeal, who asserted in opposition to to appear. Meanwhile Eusebius pressed his
Nestorius that the " eternal Word begotten point persistently and even harshly, behaving
before the ages had submitted also to be born with such warmth that, as Flavian said, " fire
a second time " (i.e. according to the flesh of itself seemed cold to him, in his zeal for
EtJSEBIUS EUSEBIUS EMESENUS 335

orthodoxy." Finding that Eutyches had conduct of Dioscorus in excluding him from
attempted to secure the adhesion of the other the council of Ephesus (Labbe, iv. 145, 156).
archimandrites to his views [Faustus (28)], His innocence, with that of St. Flavian, was
Eusebius urged that he should be immediately fully recognized at the close of the ist session
treated with the rigour he deserved (Labbe, of the council of Chalcedon (ib. 322, 323) but
;

iv. 2ii). Flavian still urged patience and at the 3rd session, on Oct. 13, he presented a
moderation. At last, on Nov. 22, Eutyches further petition against Dioscorus, on behalf
appeared with a large monastic and imperial of himself, of Flavian (roO iv 07/015), and of the
escort, and was examined. Eusebius said of orthodox faith. He urges the iniquities of
Eutyches " I am poor, he threatens me with
: Dioscorus at Ephesus, and begs for complete
exile ;he has wealth, he is already depicting exculpation for himself and condemnation for
{dva^oijypacpu) the oasis for me." He feared also Dioscorus (ib. 381). In the 4th session Eusebius
lest Eutyches should turn round and assent to took part in the case of certain Egyptian bishops
the orthodox faith— thus causing him to be sus- who declined to condemn Eutyches, alleging
pected of making calumnious charges {ib. 221, that they were bound to follow their patriarch
c, D, e). The crucial question he put to (i.e. Dioscorus), in accordance with the council

Eutyches was " My lord archimandrite, do


: of Nicaea. Eusebius has but one word to
you confess two natures after the Incarnation, say, '' xl/ei'idovTai" (ib. 513 a). We find him
and do you say that Christ is consubstantial later (5th session, Oct. 22) siding at first
with us according to the flesh or not ? " To against the imperial officers, and the wishes
the first part Eutyches would not assent he ; of the Roman legates for making no addition
was condemned by all the bishops, and to the council's definition of faith (ib. 558 d;
sentence of deposition was passed. He at cf. Bright, Hist, of the Church, p. 409). After-
once wrote to pope Leo I. in his own defence wards, however, he assisted at the revision
(Leo Mag. Ep. xxi. 739), complaining of the which made that definition a completer ex-
" machinations " of Eusebius. pression of the doctrine of Leo's tome. In the
We next hear of Eusebius in Apr. 449 at nth session he (I,abbe, iv. 699 a) voted for
the examination of the Acts of the council of the deposition of both claimants to the see
Constantinople, which Eutyches had declared of Ephesus, Bassian and Stephen, as being
to have been falsified. With him were 14 of both alike irregularly consecrated. In the 15th
the 34 bishops who had condemned Eutyches session (Oct. 23) he signed the much-contested
(Labbe, iv. 235). Eutyches was represented 28th canon of the council on the position to be
by three delegates ; Eusebius and others held by the see of Constantinople. [Leo I.]
remonstrated against his absence, but the The last time his name appears is in the
emperor's orders overruled them. Eusebius rescript of the emperor Marcian, June 452,
insisted that all examination into the case of which had for its special object to rehabilitate
Eutyches, and into any question other than the memory of Flavian, but which secured also
the authenticity of the Acts, should be referred that the condemnation of the robber council
to a general council {ib. 268). The examina- should in no way injure the reputation of
tion of the Acts does not seem to have brought Eusebius and Theodoret (ib. 866). His name
to light any inaccuracy of importance. When appears in the list of bishops signing the decrees
Eusebius arrived in Ephesus early in Aug. 449, of the council at Rome in 503, but this
to attend the council, he apparently lodged withlist certainly belongs to some earlier council
Stephen of Ephesus (ib. in d, e), but was (cf. Baron, ann. 503, ix.). Comparing him with
not permitted to attend the meetings of the Flavian, we cannot but feel his want of gener-
council, on the ground that the emperor had osity in his treatment of Eutyches, whose
forbidden it {ib. 145 a, b). Flavian urged supericr in logical power and theological per-
that he should be admitted and heard, but ception he undoubtedly was. But none can
Elpidius, one of the imperial commissioners, deny him the credit of having been a watchful
opposed it (Hefele, Concil. ii. 355), and guardian of the doctrine of the Incarnation
the same wish or command of the emperor all through his life, and a keen-sighted and
was urged by Dioscorus at the council of persistent antagonist of error, whether on the
Chalcedon also. When the passage in the one side or the other, who by his sufferings
acts of Constantinople was read where Euse- for the orthodox faith merits the title of con-
bius pressed Eutyches to acknowledge the fessor. [C.G.]
two natures after the Incarnation, the council Eusebius (35) Emesenus, bp. of Emesa, now
burst forth, " Off with Eusebius burn him " Hems, in Syria, c. 341-359-
! ! He was born at
(Labbe, iv. 224 a). Sentence of deposition Edessa, of a noble family, of Christian parents,
was pronounced against Flavian and Eusebius, and from his earliest years was taught the
and they were imprisoned (Liberat. cap. xii. Holy Scriptures. His education was contin-
;

Galland, xii. p. 140) and then sent into exile ued in Palestine and subsequently at Alex-
{Gest. de Nom. Acac. Galland, x. 668). Euse- andria. In Palestine he studied theology
bius escaped to Rome, where Leo welcomed under Eusebius of Caesarea and Patrophilus
him and granted him communion. He was of Scythopolis, from whom he contracted the
there till Apr. 481 (Leo Mag. Ep. Ixxix. Ixxx. Arian leanings which distinguished him to the
1037, 1041). Leo commends him to the care end of his life. Jerome terms him " signifer
of Anatolius of Constantinople, the successor Arianae factionis " (Chron. sub. ann. x. Con-
of Flavian, as one who had suffered much for stantii), and his Arian tenets are spoken of by
the faith. Eusebius left Rome to attend the Theodoret as too well known to admit question
council of Chalcedon. He had addressed a (Theod. Eranist. Dial. iii. p. 257, ed. Schulze).
formal petition to the emperor Marcian against About A.D. 331 he visited Antioch. Eusta-
Dioscorus, and appears in the council as his thius had been recently banished, and the see
accuser. He complains more than once of the was occupied by one of the short-lived Arian
336 EUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS
intruders, Euphronius, with whom Eusebius Valerian, when Alexandria was in revolt, a.d.
lived on terms of intimacy. Eusebius's high 262, Aemilianus, who had assumed the purple,
personal character and reputation for learning was driven into the strong quarter of the city
marked him out for the episcopate, and to called Bruchium, and besieged. Eusebius
avoid the office he repaired to Alexandria, without, and his friend AnatoHus within, the
where he devoted himself to philosophy. besieged quarter secured escape for all useless
Returning to Antioch, Flaccillus (otherwise hands, including a large number of Christians,
Placillus), the Arian bishop, received him into whom Eusebius received kindly, supplying
his episcopal residence and admitted him to them with food and medicine, and carefully
his confidence. The Arian synod which met tending the sick. To the synod of Antioch, a. d.
at Antioch a.d. 340, under the predominant 264, summoned to deal with Paul of Samo-
influence of Eusebius of Nicomedia, to nomin- sata, Dionysius bp. of Alexandria, being
ate a successor to the newly deposed Athan- unable to be present through age, sent Euse-
asius, offered the vacant throne to Eusebius, bius as his representative. The see of
who, well knowing how Athanasius was be- Laodicea was then vacant, and the Laodiceans
loved by the Alexandrians, resolutely declined, demanded Eusebius for their bishop, taking
and Gregory was chosen in his stead. Euse- no refusal. As bp. of Laodicea he sat at the
bius, however, allowed himself to be created synod when Paul of Samosata was deposed,
bp. of Emesa. This city, on the Orontes to A.D. 270. He was succeeded by his old friend
the N.E. of the Libanus range, some distance Anatolius. Eus. H. E. vii. 11, 32; Tillem.
N. of Laodicea, was famous for its magnificent Mem. Eccl. iv. 304 Le Quien, Or. Christ, ii.
;

temple of Elagabalus, the Syrophoenician 792 Neale, Patriarchate of Alex. i. yy.


; [e.v.]
sun-god. A report, based on Eusebius's Eusebius (60), bp. of Nicomedia. Our .

astronomical studies, had reached the excit- knowledge of his character is derived almost
able inhabitants that their new bishop was a exclusively from the bitter language of his theo-
sorcerer, addicted to judicial astrology. His logical antagonists. He wielded an extraordin-
approach aroused a violent popular commo- ary influence over the fortunes of some of the
tion, before which he fled to his friend and great partyleaders of the4th cent. The fascina-
future panegyrist, George, bp. of Laodicea. tion he exercised over the minds of Constantine
By George's exertions, and the influence of and Constantius, his dexterity in utilizing both
Flaccillus of Antioch and Narcissus of Nero- secular andecclesiastical law topunish his theo-
nias, the Emesenes were convinced of the logical enemies, his ingenuity in blinding the
groundlessness of their suspicions, and Euse- judgment of those not alive to the magnitude of
bius obtained quiet possession. He was a the problem, and in persuading the unwary of
great favourite with Constantius, who took the practical identity of his own views with
him on several expeditions, especially those those of the Catholic church, together with the
against Sapor II., king of Persia. It is political and personal ascendancy he achieved,
singular that the charge, which Sozomen reveal mental capacity and diplomatic skill
attributes to mere malevolence, of Sabellian- worthy of a better cause. During 20 years his
ism was brought against one whose Arian shadow haunts the pages of the ecclesiastical
leanings were so pronounced. Eusebius died historians, though they seldom bring us face to
before the end of a.d. 359- He was buried at face with the man or preserve his words. Even
Antioch (Hieron. de Vir. III. loi), and his thechronologyof hislife is singularly uncertain.
funeral oration by George of Laodicea ascribed It is difficult to understand the pertinacity
to him miraculous powers. and even ferocity with which Eusebius and
He was a very copious writer, Jerome, his party pursued the Homoousian leaders,
who speaks somewhat contemptuously of his and to reconcile this with their well-accredited
productions, particularizes treatises against the compromises, shiftings of front, and theo-
Jews, the Gentiles, and the Novatianists, an logical evasions. Dr. Newman (Arians of
exposition of Galatians in ten books, and a large Fourth Cent. p. 272) admits their consistency
number of very brief homilies on the Gospels. in one thing, " their hatred of the sacred
The greater part of his works is lost. Theo- mystery." He thinks that this mystery,
doret quotes with high commendation in his " like a spectre, was haunting the field and
Eranistes (Dial. iii. p. 258, ed. Schulze) two pas- disturbing the complacency of their intellec-
sages on the impassibility of the Son of God, a tual investigations." Their consciences did
truth for which he says Eusebius endured many not scruple to " find evasions of a test." They
and severe struggles. Theodoret also speaks of undoubtedly compromised themselves by
works of his against Apelles (Haer. Fab. i. 25) signature yet they did not treat as unim-
;

and Manes {ib. 26). All the extant remains portant that which they were wont to declare
of Eusebius are printed by Migne, Pair. t. such but set all the machinery of church and
Ixxxvi. i. pp. 461 ff. Socr. H. E. ii. 9;
Soz. empirein motion toenforce their latitudinarian
H. E. iii. 6; Niceph. H. E. ix. 5 Tillem. Mem. view on the conscience of the church.
;

Eccl. t. vi. p. 313 ; Cave, Hist. Lit. vol. i. p. The Arian and the orthodox agreed as to
207 ; Oudin, t. i. p. 389.) [e-v.] the unique and exalted dignity of the Son of
Eusebius (48), bp. of Laodicea, in Syria God; both alike described the relation between
Prima; a native and deacon of Alexandria. In the first and second hypostasis in the Godhead
the persecution under Valerian, a.d. 257, when as that which is imaged to us in the paternal
the venerable bp. Dionysius had been banished and filial relation. They even agreed that the
from Alexandria, Eusebius remained, minister- Son was " begotten of His Father before all
ing to those in prison and burying the martyrs, worlds —
" before the commencement of time,

a faithful service gratefully commemorated in an ineffable manner that the Son was the
in a letter of Dionysius (apud Eus. H. E. vii. originator of the categories of time and place,
ji). During the civil strife at the death of that " by His own will and counsel He has
|
EUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS 337
subsisted before time and before ages, as visible emblem of the internal (endiathetic)
perfect God, only begotten and unchangeable" word, and (used as) the instrument of God's
{Letter of Arius to Eus. of Nic. preserved by purposes towards His creation" (Newman,
Theodoret, i. 5). They agreed that He was I.e. 199 cf. Athan. Hist. Cone. Arim.
; et
" God of God," " Light of Light," and worthy Seleuc. cap. ii. § 18).
of all honour and worship. The orthodox The orthodox party admitted the double use
went further, and in order to affirm that the of the word X670S, allowed that it answered
Deity of the Son of God was absolute and not to the eternal wisdom and also to the eternal
relative, infinite and not finite, asserted that manifestation of God, and discarding the
He was of the same ovaia with the Father. trammels of the figurative expression by which
There Arius and Eusebius stopped, and, press- the internal relations of the Godhead can alone
ing the significance of the image of Father and be represented to us, declared that they could
Son by materiahstic analogies into logical not carry the materialistic or temporal accom-
conclusions, argued that " generation " im- paniments of our idea of Father and Son into
plied that " there was [a period, rather than this " generation," and boldly accepted the
a time '] when He was not," that " He was
'
sublime paradox with which Origen had refu-
not before He was begotten." The one
element, said they, which the Son did not

ted Sabellianism viz. the " eternal generation
of the Son." To suppose the relation between
possess by His generation was the eternal, the Father and Son other than eternal was to
absolute ovcria of the Father. " We affirm," be involved in the toils of a polytheistic ema-
said Eusebius, in his one extant authentic nation and Gnostic speculation. Compelled
letter, addressed to Paulinus of Tyre (Theod. to formulate expressions about the infinite and
i. 6), that " there is One Who is unbegotten, eternal God, they concluded that any formula
and that there also exists Another, Who did which divided the essence of God left infinity
in truth proceed from Him, yet Who was not on the one side, and the finite on the other,
made out of His substance, and Who does not i.e. that there would be, on this hypothesis, an
at all participate in the nature or substance infinite difference even in majesty and glory
of Him Who is unbegotten." * between the Father and the Son. This was
If we
follow out the logical conclusions blasphemy in the eyes of those who held the
involved in the denial of the orthodox state- Divinity of the Son of God.
ment on this transcendental theme, it is The controversy was embittered by the
more easy to understand the abhorrence with method in which Arius and Eusebius appealed
which the dogmatic negations of the Arians to Holy Scripture. They urged that Godhead
were regarded by the Catholic church. The and participation in the divine nature were
position of Arius and Eusebius involved a attributed to Christ in the same terms in which
virtual Ditheism, and opened the door to a similar distinctions are yielded by God to other
novel Polytheism. After Christianity had creatures, angelic, human, or physical (Theod.
triumphed over the gods of heathendom, H. E. i. 6, 8). Thus Christ's rank in the
Arius seemed to be reintroducing them under universe might be indefinitely reduced, and
other names. The numerical unity of God all confidence in Him ultimately proved an
was at stake and a schism, or at least a
; illusion. The argument had a tone of gross
divarication of interests in the Godhead, irreverence, even if the leaders can be quite
shewn to be possible. Moreover, the " Div- acquitted of blasphemous levity or intentional
inity " of the Incarnate Word was on this abuse.
hypothesis less than God and so behind the
; One of the tactics of the Arian or Eusebian
Deity which He claimed there loomed another party was to accuse of Sabellianism those, like
Godhead, between Whom and Himself anta- Athanasius, Eustathius, and Marcellus of
gonism might easily be predicated. The Ancyra, who refused their interpretation of
Gnosticism of Marcion had already drawn such the relation between the Father and the Son.
antagonism into sharp outline, and the entire Doubtless many not versed in philosophical
view of the person of the Lord, thus suggested, discussion were incapable of discriminating
rapidly degenerated into a cold and un- between the views of Sabellius and an
christian humanitarianism. orthodoxy which vehemently or unguardedly
The exigencies of historic criticism and of condemned the Arian position. Eusebius re-
the exegesis of the N.T. compelled the Arian pudiated violently the Pantheistic tendency of
party to discriminate between the Word, the the Sabellian doctrine. He is the most promi-
power, the wisdom of God, and the Son. They nent and most distinguished man of the entire
could not deny, since God could never have movement, and it has been plausibly argued
been without His " Logos," that the Logos was that he was the teacher rather than the dis-
in some sense eternal. So they took advan- ciple of Arius. Athanasius himself made the
tage of the distinction drawn in the Greek suggestion. We learn on good authority, that
schools between X.iyos evdidderos, identifiable of Arius himself, that they were fellovv-disciplcs
with the wisdom, reason, and self-conscious- of Lucian of Antioch {ih. 5). Lucian after-
ness of God, and \d70s Trpo<popiKiis, the wards modified his views and became a martyr
setting forth and going out at a particular for the faith, but his rationalizing spirit had
epoch of the divine energy. The latter they had a great effect on the schools of Antioch.
regarded as the A670S which was made flesh According to Ammianus Marcellinus, Eusebius
and might be equated with the Son. " The was a distant relative of the emperor Julian,
external (prophoric) word was a created Being and therefore possibly of Constantine.
made in the beginning of all things as the It may have been through the wife of
Licinius and sister of Constantine that he
* This phrase seems to class him with Heter- received his first ecclesiastical appointment.
ousians or even Anomoeans, at that early period. This was the bishopric of Berytus (Beirout) in
22
338 EUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS
Syria. We cannot say under what pretext foolish verbal dispute,"and difference of judg-
he was translated to the see of Nicomedia, a ment was, he urged, compatible with union and
city which was still the principal seat of the communion. Constantine had probably been led
imperial court. In Nicomedia his ambitious to this step by Eusebius of Nicomedia, and the
spirit and personal relations with the imperial strong pressure put upon Alexander to receive
family gave him much influence. " He was," Arius into communion corresponds with the
says Sozomen (//. E. i. 15), "a man of con- subsequent persistent demand of the Euse-
siderable learning, and held in high repute at bians. The effort at mediation failed, al-
the palace." Here were spun the webs by though conducted with skilful diplomacy and
which the Arian conspiracy for a while pre- tact by the venerable Hosius. As the dispute
vailed over the faith and discipline of the was no mere verbal quibble, but did in reality
church. One of the most authoritative docu- touch the very object of divine worship, the
ments of Arianism is a letter sent by Arius to ground of religious hope, and the unity of
Eusebius of Nicomedia, after his first suspen- the Godhead, the well-meant interference of
sion from presbyteral functions at Baukalis, the emjjeror merely augmented the acrimony
Alexandria, in which he reminds Eusebius of the disputants. Arius was again condemned
of their ancient friendship and briefly by a council at Alexandria, and the entire
states his own views. [Arius.] Arius boasts East was disturbed. The angry letter of
that Eusebius of Caesarea, Theodotus of Constantine to Arius, which must have been
Laodicea, Paulinus of Tyre, Athanasius of written after his condemnation by the Alex-
Anazarbus, Gregory of Berytus, Aetius of andrian council and before the council of
Lydda, and all the bishops of the East, if he is Nicaea, shews that the influence of Eusebius^
condemned, must be condemned with him must now have been in abeyance.* Constan-"
(Theod. H. E. i. 5). The alarm created by the tine was no theologian, but hated a recalcitrant
conduct of Arius and his numerous friends in subordinate in church or state, and hence the
high quarters induced Alexander of Alexandria undoubted vacillation of his mind towards
to indite his famous letter to Alexander of Alexander, Arius, Eusebius, and Athanasius.
Constantinople, which is of an encyclical At the oecumenical council of Nicaea in 325,
character and was sent in some form to Eusebius defended the excommunicated pres-
Eusebius of Nicomedia and other prelates. byter and was the advocate and interpreter of
Exasperated by its tone, Eusebius called a his opinions before the council. We must give
council in Bithynia (probably at Nicomedia him credit for moral courage in risking his
itself) of the friends of Arius, who addressed position as bishop and as court favourite for
numerous bishops, desiring them to grant the sake of his theological views, and opposing
communion to the Arians and requiring, himself almost single-handed to the nearly
Alexander to do the like (Soz. i. 15). These unanimous judgment of the first representative
proceedings drew from Eusebius a written assembly of the Christian episcopate- a judg- —
expression of his views, in a letter to Paulinus ment fanned into enthusiasm by martyrs and
of Tyre, preserved by Theodoret (i. 6). Euse- monks from the African monasteries and
bius believed Alexander of Alexandria to be accepted hurriedly but passionately by the
in doctrinal error, but not yet so far gone but emperor. The courage was of short duration,
that Paulinus might put him right. He and made way for disingenuous wiles. Euse-
tacitly assumed that the party of Alexandria bius soon displayed an inconsistent and
asserted " two unbegotten beings," a position temporizing spirit. Whether or no they still
utterly denied by themselves. He repudiated held that the difference was merely verbal,
strongly the idea that the Son was made in any when the Arian bishops in the council found
sense out of the substance of God ; declaring that the Godhead of the Redeemer was de-
the Son " to be entirely distinct in nature and clared by the vast majoritj' to be of the very
power," the method of His origination being essence of Christian doctrine, they made every
known only to God, not even to the Son effort to accept the terms in which that God-
Himself. The verb " created," in Prov. viii. head was being expressed by the council,
22-26, could not, Eusebius said, have been making signs to each other that term after
used if the " wisdom " of which the prophet term, such as " Power of God," " Wisdom of
was speaking was t'f diroppolat rrjs oixrias God," " Image of God," " Very God of very
:

" For that which proceeds from Him Who is God," might be accepted because they could
unbegotten cannot be said to have been use them of such divinity as was " made " or
created or founded either by Him or by constituted as such by the divine appoint-
another." The effect of the word " begotten " ment. Thus they were becoming parties to
is reduced to a minimum by saving that the a test, which they were intending to evade.
term is used of " things " and of persons The term Homooiision, as applied to the Son
entirely different in nature from God. " Men," of God, rallied for a while their conscience, and
" Israel," and " drops of dew " are in different Eusebius declared it to be untenable. Ac-
scriptures said to be " begotten " of God. cording to Theodoret (i. 8), the " formulary
Therefore, Eusebius argued, the term cannot propounded by Eusebius contained undis-
and does not carry similarity, still less identity guised evidence of his blasphemy the reading ;

of nature. At first the emperor Constantine of it occasioned great grief to the audience on
treated the conflict as if capable of easy account of the depravity of the doctrines ;

adjustment by a wise exercise of Christian the writer was covered with shame, and the
temper. In 324 he wrote a joint letter, which impious writing was torn to pieces." The
he entrusted to Hosius of Cordova (Soz. H. E.
i. 16), in which he called upon Alexander and
• Tillemont, /.^s /ln>;(x, note 5. The letter is pre-
served by Gelasius of Cyzicus (iii. i) in Greek, and
Arius, for the sake of peace, to terminate their
given by Baronius in I,atin from a MS. in tlie Vatican.
controversy. The dispute was a " trifling and Bar. Ann. 319, vi.
GUSEBtOS EUSEBIUS 339

inconsistency of the Arian party is exaggerated to communicate with the Arians. This per-
by Theodoret, for he adds, " the Arians tinacity is suggested by Constantine as the
unanimously signed the confession of faith actuating cause and occasion of his exile.
adopted by the council." This is not precisely Epiphanius {Haer. Ixviii.) details the cir-
the case. There were 17 bishops (Soz. i. 20) * cumstances of the union of the Meletian
who at first refused their signatures, among schismatics with the Arians, and the disin-
them both the Eusebii, Theognis of Nicaea, genuous part taken by Eusebius in promising
Menophantus of Ephesus, Secundus of his good offices with the emperor, if they in
Ptolemais, Theonas, Patrophilus, Narcissus, their turn would promote the return of Arius
Maris, and others. Eusebius of Caesarea, to Alexandria, and would promise inter-com-
after long discussion, signed the symbol, which munion with him and his party.
was in fact an enlargement of a formal creed The terms of hatred and disgust with which
that he had himself presented to the council, Constantine speaks of Eusebius render his
on the ground that the negative dogmata of early return to Nicomedia very puzzling.
the Arian party which were anathematized by Sozomen (ii. 16) and Socrates (i. 14) both
the council could not be found in Scripture. record a letter (a.d. 328) from Eusebius and
Others of his party followed. According to Theognis to " the Bishops," explaining their
Theodoret (i. 9), all, except Secundus and views, in which they say, " We hold the same
Theonas, joined in the condemnation of Arius ;
faith that you do, and after a diligent exam-
and Sozomen (i. 21) declares explicitly that ination of the word ofxoovaLOs, are wholly intent
Eusebius of Nicomedia, with others, " sanc- upon preserving peace, and are seduced by no
tioned " the decision of the synod as to the heresy. Having proposed for the safety of the
consubstantiality of the Son, and the excom- church such suggestions as occurred to us, and
munication of those who held the Arian having certified what we deemed requisite, we
formulae ; but Sozomen goes on to say that signed the confession of faith. We did not
" it ought to be known that Eusebius and certainly sign the anathemas not because we —
Theognis, although they assented to the impugned the confession of faith, but because
exposition of faith set forth by the council, we did not believe the accused to be what he
neither agreed nor subscribed to the deposition was represented to us. So far from opposing
. . .

of Arius." Sozomen, apparently, makes this any of the decrees enacted in your holy synod,
refusal to sign, on the part of Eusebius and we assent to all of them not because we are—
Theognis, to have been the reason or occasion wearied of exile, but because we wish to avert
of their own exile, and of the filling up by all suspicion of heresy. The accused having
. • .

Constantine of their respective sees with justified himself and having been recalled from
Amphion and Chrestus. Philostorgius admits exile,. . we beseech you to make our
.

that the whole Arian party, except Secundus supplications known to our most godly em-
and Theonas, signed the symbol, but that they peror, and that you immediately direct us to
did it deceitfully (ec 56\u;), with the mental act according to your will." li this letter is
reservation of ofioiovaioi' (of similar substance) genuine, it demonstrates the fact of their
for bfioovcnov (of the same substance). He partial and incomplete signature of the symbol
adds, according to his editor, that they did of Nicaea, and that the incompleteness turned
this under the direction of Constantina, the on personal and not on doctrinal grounds.
sister of Constantine ; and further he relates Other statements of Sozomen (ii. 27) are in
that " Secundus, when sent into exile, re- harmony with it, but there are reasons for
proached Eusebius for having signed, saying hesitating to receive these statements, and
that he did so in order to avoid going into the letter itself is in obvious contradiction
exile, and that Secundus expressed a confident with the evidence of Philostorgius fi. 9) and
hope that Eusebius would shortly be exiled, an Epiphanius (Ixviii. 5) that Eusebius and
event which took place three months after the Theognis signed the symbol, anathemas and
council." Moreover, Athanasius (de Decretis all. Are we to believe these writers against
Syn. Nic. cc. 3, 18) expressly says that Euse- the testimony of Sozomen and Socrates, who
bius signed the formulary. expressly give a consistent representation
Notwithstanding their signature, for some undoubtedly more favourable to Eusebius ?
reason Eusebius and Theognis were banished The most powerful argument of De Broglie
for nearly three years from their respective and others against the genuineness of the
sees. Theodoret (//. E. i. 20) preserves a letter, as being written from the exile of
portion of a letter written by Constantine Eusebius, is the silence of Athanasius, who
against Eusebius and Theognis, and addressed never uses it to shew the identity of the
to the Nicomedians. The document displays position and sentiments of Arius and Euse-
bitter animosity, and, for so astute a prince, bius. Philostorgius recounts a rumour that
a curious simplicity. Constantine reveals a after the council Eusebius desired to have his
private grudge against Eusebius for his con- name expunged from the list of signatures, and
duct when Licinius was contending with him, a similar statement is repeated by Sozomen
and professes to have seized the accomplices (ii. 21) as the possible cause of the banishment
of Eusebius and to have possessed himself of of Eusebius. The fact may, notwithstanding
darnaging papers and trustworthy evidence the adverse judgment of many historians, have
against him. He reproaches Eusebius with been that Eusebius signed the formulary, ex-
having been the first defender of Arius and pressing the view he took of its meaning, and
with having deceived him in hope of retaining discriminating between an anathema of certain
his benefice. He refers angrily to the conduct positions and the persecution of an individual.
of Eusebius in urging Alexandrians and others A signature, thus qualified, may have savedhim
Philostorgius mentions 22 names, but Hefele, j
from immediate banishment. In the course of
following Socrates and Sozomen, limits them to 17.
I
three months his sympathy with Arius and his
;

340 EUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS


underhand proceeding with the Meletians may hero of the Catholic faith. The first charge
have roused the emperor's indignation and which Eusebius encouraged the Meletians to
led to his banishment. The probability that bring against Athanasius concerned his taxing
Arius was recalled first, as positively stated in the people of Egypt for linen vestments,
what purports to be a contemporary docu- and turned upon the supposed violence of
ment, is certainly greater than that merely d Macarius, the representative of Athanasius,
priori probability on which De Broglie insists. in overthrowing the altar and the chalice,
Moreover, if Arius had been restored to when reproving (for uncanonical proceedings)
favour, the vacillating mind of Constantine Ischyras, a priest of the Colluthian sect. These
may have been moved to recall the two charges were all absolutely disproved by
bishops. At all events, c. 329, we find Euse- Athanasius before Constantine at Nicomedia.
bius once more in high favour with Constantine On his return to Alexandria, Athanasius had
(Socr. H. E. i. 23), discharging his episcopal to encounter fresh opposition. The prepos-
functions and persuading Constantine that terous story of the murder of Arsenius, with
he and Arius held substantially the creed of its grotesque accompaniments, was gravely
Nicaea. Thenceforward Eusebius used his laid at his door. [Athanasius.] To this, at
great power at court and his ascendancy over first, he disdained to reply. Eusebius de-
the mind of Constantine to blast the character clared even this to be a serious charge, and
and quench the influence of the most distin- made much capital out of the refusal of
guished advocates of anti-Arian views. He Athanasius to attend the council at Caesarea,
put all the machinery of church and state into which was summoned, among other causes,
operation to unseat Athanasius, Eustathius, to investigate it (Theod. i. 28). In 335, the
Marcellus, and others ; and, by means open partisan council of Tyre passed a sentence of
to the severest reprehension, steadily and un- deposition upon Athanasius, who had fled to
scrupulously strove to enforce his latitudin- Constantinople to appeal to the emperor, who
arian compromise on the Catholic church. It summoned the whole synod of Tyre before
is not difficult to trace his hand in the letter of him. Eusebius and a few of his party, Theog-
Constantine threatening Athanasius, now nis, Patrophilus, Valens, and Ursacius, obeyed
archbp. of Alexandria, with deposition if he the summons, and confronted Athanasius
did not admit those anxious for communion. but abandoning the disproved charges upon
Moreover, Athanasius assures us that Eusebius which the sentence of deposition rested, they
wrote to him personally with the same object. met him with new accusations likely to
The answers Athanasius gave to Eusebius and damage him in the view of the emperor.
the emperor madeit clear that the project could Constantine yielded to the malicious inven-
never succeed so long as Athanasius remained tions of Eusebius, and banished Athanasius to
at Alexandria. Treves, in Feb. 336. The cause of banishment
Meanwhile, considerable controversy had is obscure, but twice over {Ap. § 87, Hist.Ar.
occurred between Eusebius of Caesarea and § 50) Athanasius declares that Constantine
Eustathius of Antioch on the true meaning sent him to Gaul to deliver him from the fury
of the term Homoousios. Eustathius [Eus- of his enemies. While Athanasius was in
tathius (3)], in his zeal for the Nicene faith, exile, Eusebius and his party impeached Mar-
had strenuously refused to admit Arians into cellus of Ancyra for refusing to appear at the
communion, and laid himself open, in the council of Dedication at Jerusalem, a.d. 335,
opinion of Eusebius of Caesarea, to the charge and for Sabellianism, an implication of heresy
of Sabellianism (Soz. ii. 18). This provided to which he exposed himself while zealously
the opportunity for Eusebius of Nicomedia to vindicating his refusal to hold communion
strike a blow at Eustathius, and nothing can with Arians. [Asterius (1) ; Marcellus.]
exceed the treachery shewn by Eusebius on Marcellus was deposed by the Eusebians, and
this occasion. His apparently friendly visit not restored till the council of Sardica. At
to Eustathius on his way to Jerusalem (Soz. the council of Dedication at Jerusalem, Arius
ii. IQ; Theod. i. 21), the gathering of his Arian prof^iounded a view of his faith which was
supporters on his return to Antioch, shew the satisfactory to the council, was received into
scheme to have been deeply laid. Here, a.d. communion there, and sent by Eusebius to
330 or beginning of 331, the council of his Alexandria, whence, as his presence created
iriends was held, at which the charge of great disturbance, he was summoned to Con-
Sabellianism was, according to Theodoret stantinople. There -A-rius died tragically on the
(i. 21) and Philostorgius (li. eve of the public reception which Eusebius
7), aggravated by
the accusation brought by a woman, that had planned. The death of Alexander of Con-
uncommon device of the enemies of eccle-

Eustathius was the father of her child a not stantinople followed very shortly, and the
effort to elect Paul [Paulus (18)] in his place
siastics. The upshot was that through this, (without the consent of the bp. of Nicomedia)
and other vamped-up charges of disrespect to roused the ire of Eusebius, who intrigued to
the emperor's mother, Eustathius was deposed secure his first deposition. Eusebius must
and exiled by the Eusebians. The letter of still have retained the favour of Constantine,
Constantine upon the affair, and against as he appears to have administered baptism
heretics generally, brought the controversy to to the dying emperor, May 337. Jerome says
a lull, until the first attack upon Athanasius. that by this act Constantine avowed himself
The career of Eusebius of Nicomedia during an Arian. " But all history protests against
the remaining ten years of his life is so closely the severity' of this sentence " (de Broglie).
intertwined with the romantic sufferings of Hefele supposes that Constantine regarded
Athanasius that it is difficult to indicate the Eusebius as the great advocate of Christian
part he took in the persecution of Athanasius unity. Moreover, in the eyes of Constantine,
without reproducing the story of this great Eusebius was one who had signed the Nicene
EUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS 341

symbol, and had renounced the negations of 246)


ii. he " entrusted the flock to dogs,
;

Arius. The ecclesiastical historians give wolves, foxes" (v. 147), "the monasteries to
divergent statements as to when Eusebius herdsmen and runaway slaves " (i. 262) ; he
was raised to the episcopate of Constantinople. was forgetful of the poor, and inaccessible to
Theodoret {i. 19) accuses Eusebius of unlawful remonstrance (iii. 260). His confidants were
translation from Nicomedia to Constantinople, Lucius the archdeacon, who was said to take
" in direct violation of that canon which pro- money for ordinations (i. 29) Zosimus a
;

hibits bishops and presbyters from going from priest, who disgraced his grey hairs by vices
one city to another," and asserts that this (i. 140 ii. 75. 205, etc.) and retained contri-
;

took place on the death of Alexander. There butions meant for the poor (v. 210); and three
is, however, proof that Paul, who was twice deacons, Eustathius, Anatolius, and Maron
banished through the influence of Eusebius, (i. 223 ii. 28, 29, etc.), with whom Gotthius (ii.
;

was the immediate successor of Alexander. 10), Simon, and Chaeremon (v. 48, 373) are
Paul was nominated by Alexander, but the associated. The greediness of those who ad-
Eusebian party put forward Macedonius (Soz. ministered the church property was insatiable
iii. 4), and were defeated. The dispute roused (v. 79). The offences of these men, or of some
the indignation of Constantius, and " through of them, were so gross that men criedout against
the machination of the enemies of Paul a them as effective advocates of Epicureanism (ii,
synod was convened, and he was expelled from 153, 230), and Isidore had to tell his corre-
the church, and Eusebius, bp. of Nicomedia, spondents that he had done his best (as,
was installed in the bishopric of Constanti- indeed, many of his letters shew, e.g. i. 140,
nople " with this statement Socrates (ii. 7) 436
; ii. 28, 39, etc.) to reclaim the offenders,
;

agrees. For a while the education of Julian but that the physician could not compel the
was entrusted to Eusebius, who had unbounded patient to follow his advice, that " God the
influence over Constantius. Word Himself" could not save Judas (iv. 205.)
In 340 the Eusebians held a synod at An- that a good man should not soil his lips by de-
tioch, at which Athanasius was once more nouncing their conduct (iii. 229 v. 116), and
;

condemned. In 341 (May) the council that nothing remained but to pray for their
developed into the celebrated council in conversion (v. 2, 105, etc.), and in the mean-
Encaeniis, held also at Antioch, at which, time to distinguish between the man and the
under the presidency of Eusebius or Placetus office (ii. 52), and toremember that the unworthi-
of Antioch, and with the assent and presence ness of the minister hindered not the effect of
of Constantius, divers canons were passed, the sacraments (ii. 32). But the fullest account
which are esteemed of authority by later of the misgovernment of the church of Pelusium
oecumenical councils. These two councils are is given in the story of Martinianus (ii. 127),
confounded and identified by Socrates (ii. 2) whom Eusebius had ordained, and made
and Sozomen. " oeconomus " or church steward. He played
The cruel injustice to which Athanasius was the knave and tyrant, treated the bishops as his
subjected by long exile is freely attributed to tool, was more than once in peril of his life from
Eusebius, as its mainspring and constant the indignation of the citizens, went to Alex-
instigator. Nevertheless the last thing we andria, was menaced by archbp. Cyril with ex-
are told about Eusebius by Socrates (ii. 13) is communication, but returned and imputed to
that he appealed from the council of Antioch Cyril himself a participation in simony. Such
to Julius, bp. of Rome, to give definite sen- things induced many to leave Pelusium in
tence as to Athanasius, but that before the disgust " the altar lacked ministers" (i. 38) a
; ;

sentence of Julius reached him, " immediately pious deacon, such as Eutonius, was oppressed
after the council broke up, breath went out by Zosimus (ii. 131) and attacked by the
of his body, and so he died," a.d. 342. whole clergy, to some extent out of sub-
In addition to authors already cited, the serviency to the bishop (v. 564). Eusebius
following may be consulted : The Orations of is not mentioned among the Fathers of the
St. Athanasius against the Arians, according to council of Chalcedon in 451. In 457 he and
the Benedictine Text, with an Account of his Peter, bp.of Majuma, assisted at the ordination
Life, by WiUiam Bright, D.D. ;Hefele, His- of Timotheus Aelurus to the see of Alexandria
tory of the Christian Councils, translated by (Evagr. H. E. ii. 8), and those who were parties
Prebendary Clark and Mr. Oxenham, vols. i. to that proceeding are stated by Theodorus
and ii. Mohler, Athanasius der Grosse und
; Lector (H. E. i. 9) to have been deposed
die Kirche seiner Zeit (1844) ;William Bright, bishops. The epistle of the Egyptian bishops
D.D., History of the Church from 313 to 451 to Anatolius (Cod. Encyc. in Mansi, vii. 533 a)
(1869) ; Albert de Broglie, L'Egliseet V Empire represents the two bishops (here unnamed)
(1856), t. ii. The Arians of the Fourth Century,
; who ordained Timotheus as having no com-
by J. H. Newman (4th ed. 1876). [h.r.r.] munion with the Catholic church. Le Quien,
Eusebius (71), bp. of Pelusium, between Or. Chr. ii. 533 Tillem. Mem. xv. 747, 748,
;

Ammonius and Georgius. He was present at the 782-788. [W.B. AND C.H.]
council of Ephesus in 431 (Mansi, iv. 1127 a, Eusebius (77), bp. of Samosata (360-373), the
1219 B, 1366 d; v. 615 c). His contemporary friend alike of Basil the Great, Meletius, and
Isidore, abbat of Pelusium, depicts him in the Gregory Nazianzen. All that is definitely known
darkest colours, as a man of some taste and of Eusebiusis gathered from the epistles of Basil
some ability, an " agreeable " preacher [Ep. i. and of Gregory, and from some incidents in
112 of. V. 301), but hot-tempered (v. 196 cf.
;
; the Ecclesiastical History of Theodoret. The
iii. 44) and easily swayed
bv men worse than fervent and laudatory phrases applied to him
himself (ii. 127; v. 451); his hands were might suggest hyperbole if they were not so
not clear of simoniacal gain, which he em- constant {Epp. xxviii. xxix. Greg. Naz. 0pp.
ployed in building a splendid church (i. 37 ed. Prunaeus. Colon, vol. i. 792 ; Ep. xxxiv.
;
342 EUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS
Basilii opera, ed. Par. t. iii.)- As bp. of Samo- in view of" their common
troubles from Arian
sata in 361, he took part in the consecration opponents. The Ep. xcii. Paris
letter (Basil,
of Meletius to the see of Antioch. Meletius ed.), a melancholy Jeremiad, recounts disaster
was then in communion with the Arians, and and disorder, uncanonical proceedings and
a coalition of bishops of both parties placed Arian heresy. The Eastern bishops look to
the document affirming the consecration in their brethren in Italy and Gaul for sympathy
the hands of Eusebius. Meletius soon pro- and advice, paying a tribute to the pristine
claimed explicitly his Nicene Trinitarianism, purity which the Western churches had pre-
and was banished by Constantius on the served intact while the Eastern churches had
charge of Sabellianism. Meanwhile Eusebius been lacerated, undermined, and divided by
had returned to Samosata with the written heretics and unconstitutional acts. Later in
record of the appointment of Meletius to 372 Basil entreats Eusebius to meet him at
Antioch. The Arians, anxious to destroy this Phargamon in Armenia, at an assembly of
proof of their complicity, persuaded Constan- bishops (Ep. xcv.). If Eusebius will not or
tius to demand, by a public functionary, the cannot attend the conference, neither will
reddition of the document. Eusebius replied, Basil and (xcviii.) he passionately urges him
;

" I cannot consent to restore the public de- to visit him at Caesarea. Letters from Eusebius
posit, except at the command of the whole appear to havebeen received by Basil, who once
assembly of bishops by whom it was com- more (c.) begs a visit at the time of the festival
mitted to my care." This reply incensed the of the martyr Eupsychius, since many things
emperor, who wrote to Eusebius ordering him demanded mutual consideration. At the end
to deliver the decree on pain of amputation of of 372 Basil (cv.) managed the laborious-
his right hand. Theodoret says the threat was journey to Samosata, and secured from his
only meant to intimidate the bishop if so,
;
friend the promise of a return visit. This
it failed, for Eusebius stretched out both hands, promise, said he, had ravished the church with
exclaiming, " I am willing to suffer the loss joy. In 373 Basil urged Eusebius to fulfil
of both hands rather than resign a document his promise, and (cxxvii.) assured him that
which contains so manifest a demonstration Jovinus had answered his expectations as bp.
of the impiety of the Arians." of Nicopolis. Jovinus was a worthy pupil of
Tillemont hesitates to claim for Eusebius, as Eusebius, and gratified Basil by his canonical
many writers have done, the honour of being proprieties. Everywhere the dp(/Li,fj.aTa of
the Christian confessor in the persecutions Eusebius exhibit the image of his sanctity.
under Julian. According to Greg. Naz. Other authorities (Tillem. Art. iii.) record that
{Orat. c. J ulianum, i. p. 133 B.C.), when suffer- Jovinus relapsed afterwards into Arianism.
ing on the rack and finding one part of his The good offices of Eusebius were solicited by
body not as yet tortured, Eusebius complained Eustathius of Sebaste, who had quarrelled
to the executioners for not conferring equal with Basil. Basil's principle of " purity be-
honour on his entire frame. The death of fore reconciliation " convinced Eusebius of his
Julian and the accession of Jovian gave wisdom and moderation. At the council of
liberty to the church. Gangra, probably in 372 or 373, Eustathius of
During and after this temporary lull in the Sebaste was condemned for Arian tendencies
imperial patronage of the Arian party, the and hyperascetic practices. There is a difficulty
great exertions of Eusebius probably took in deciding who was the Eusebius mentioned
place. He is represented as travelling in the pritno loco without a see in the synodal letter.
guise of a soldier (Theod. iv. 13) through It may have been the bp. of Samosata, and as
Phoenicia and Palestine, ordaining presbyters Basil entreated his advice as to Eustathius, he
and deacons, and must thus have become may have joined him, Hypatius, Gregory, and
known to Basil, who on the death of Eusebius other friends whose names occur in this pro-
of Caesarea wrote to Gregory (Has. Ep. xlvii. nunciamiento. His age and moral eminence
Paris ed.), the father of Gregory of Nazianzus, wouldgivehimthisprominent position. The 20
advising the selection of Eusebius of Samosata canons of Gangra are detailed with interesting
for the vacant bishopric. The Paris editors ofcomment by Hefele, who thinks the chronology
Basil plausibly suggest that the letter thus entirely uncertain. We venture the above sug-
numbered was written by Gregory to Eusebius gestion, which would throw considerable light
concerning Basil, rather than by Basil concern- on the practical character of the bp. of Samosata.
ing Eusebius. The part which Eusebius did In 373 a letter of Basil (Ep. cxxxvi.) shews that
take in the election of Basil is well known. Eusebius had successfully secured theelection of
Basil's appointment gave Gregory extreme aCatholic bishop at Tarsus. In consequence, he
satisfaction (Greg. Naz. Ep. xxix.). He dilates was eagerly entreated to visit Basil at Caesarea.
on the delight which the visit of Eusebius to He may have done so, and presided at the
Caesarea had given the community. The bed- council of Gangra. An encyclical which
ridden had sprung from their couches, and all Eusebius proposed to send to Italy was not
kinds of moral miracles had been wrought by prepared, but Dorotheus and Gregory of
his presence. Thereafter the correspondence Nyssa were induced to visit Rome in 374. The
between Basil and Eusebius reveals the pro- Paris editors assign to 368 or 369 Basil's
gress of their jf)int lives, and throws some light letters (xxvii. xxxi.) descriptive of his illness,
upon the history of the church. The two and the famine that arrested his movements,
ecclesiastics were passionately eager for one but whensoever written, they reveal the extra-
another's society, and appear to have formed ordinary confidence put by Basil in his brother
numerous designs, all falling through, for an bishop. Hehadbeenhealedbytheintercessions
interchange of visits. of Eusebius, and now, all medical aid having
In 372 Eusebius signed, with Meletius. Basil, failed Hypatius his brother, he sends him to
and 29 others, a letter to the Western bishops. Samosata to be under the care and prayers of
EUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS 343
Eusebius and his brethren. It is remarkable rious hints are not unfrequently dropped as to
that Eusebius was left undisturbed during the the sentiment entertained at Rome with refer-
bitter persecutions of the orthodox by the ence to himself, Eusebius, and Meletius. In
emperor Valens. At length his hour came, 377 Dorotheus found that the two latter were,
and few pages in the historj' of the time are to the horror of Basil, reckoned at Rome as
more vivid than those which portray the cir- Arians. Eusebius suffered less from the bar-
cumstances of his exile. Valens promised barian ravages of the Goths than from this
the Arian bp. Eudoxius, who had baptized momentary assault on his honour. In 378
him, that he would banish all who held con- the persecuting policy of Valens was closed
trary opinions. Thus Eusebius was expelled by his death. Gratian recalled the banished
from Samosata (Theod. iv. 13). The imperial prelates, and gave peace to the Eastern church.
sentence ordered his instant departure to Theodoret {H. E. v. 4, 5) expressly mentions
Thrace {ib. 14). Ceillier (v. 3) places this the permission to Eusebius to return. Not-
in 374. The officer who served the sum- withstanding the apparently non-canonical
mons was bidden by Eusebius to conceal the character of the proceeding, Eusebius ordained
cause of his journey. " For if the multitude numerous bishops on his way from Thrace to
(said Eusebius), who are all imbued with the Euphrates, including Acacius at Beroea,
divine zeal, should learn your design, they Theodotus at Hierapolis, Isidore at C^tus, and
would drown you, and I should have to answer Eulogius at Edessa. All these names were
for your death." After conducting worship, appended to the creed of Constantinople.
he took one domestic servant, a " pillow, and When taking part in the ordination of Maris
a book," and departed in the dead of night. at the little town of Dolica (Theod. H. E. v. 4),
The effect of his departure upon his flock a woman charged with Arian passion hurled
is graphically described by Theodoret. The at Eusebius a brick, which fell upon his head,
clamour, the weeping, the pursuit, the entreat- and wounded him fatally. Theodoret records
ies to return to Samosata and brave the wrath that the aged bishop, in the spirit of the proto-
of the emperor, the humble submission of the martyr and his Divine Lord, extorted promises
bishop to the will of the prince on the ground from his attendants that they would make no
of the authority of St. Paul, the refusal of search for his murderess. <3n June 22 the
costly gifts, the parting of the old man from Eastern churches commemorate his so-called
his people, and the disappearance of the ven- mart>Tdom. His nephew Antiochus probably
erable confessor on his long and perilous succeeded to the bishopric of Samosata.
journey to the Danube, are all told in a few Tillem. viii. 326 ; Ceillier, v. 5. [h.r.r.]
striking sentences. Eusebius had excited a Eusebius '93), St., bp. of Vercellae (Vercelli),
persistent and intense antagonism to the views known for his zeal and sufferings
in the cause
of the Arians which assumed very practical of orthodoxy. He was born in Sardinia, or-
forms. The Arian bp. Eunomius was avoided dained a " reader " at Rome, and in 340 con-
as if smitten with deadly and contagious pest. secrated bp. of Vercelli. St. Ambrose, in a
The very water he used in the public bath was letter to the church there (Ep. 63), especially
wasted by the populace as contaminated. The commends him as the first Western bishop
repugnance being invincible, the poor man, who joined monastic discipline with the dis-
inoffensive and gentle in spirit, retired from charge of episcopal duties. He took several of
the unequal contest. His successor, Lucius, his clergy to live with him, and adopted a kind
" a wolf and a deceiver of the flock," was of monastic rule for their daily life. In 354
received with scant courtesy. The children (Jaffe, Reg. Pontif. p. 15) he was asked by
spontaneously burned a ball upon which the Liberius, bp. of Rome, to go with Lucifer of
ass on which the Arian bishop rode had acci- Cagliari and others to Constantius. to suggest
dentally trodden. Lucius was not conquered the summoning of a council on the disputes
by such manifestations, and took counsel with between the Arians and the orthodox. The
the Roman magistracy to banish all the council was held in the next year at Milan.
Catholic clergy. Meanwhile Eusebius by At first Eusebius absented himself, but ulti-
slow stages reached the Danube when " the mately yielded to the united solicitations of
Goths were ravaging Thrace and besieging the Arian party, of Lucifer and Pancratius, the
many cities." The most vigorous eulogiumis orthodox delegates of Liberius, and of the
passed upon his power to console others. At emperor. The proceedings were somewhat
this dark time his faithfulness was a joy to disorderly', and the action of the bp. of Milan
the Eastern bishops. Basil congratulated was undecided. The practical question was
Antiochus, a nephew of Eusebius, on the privi- whether the bishops present should sign a
lege of having seen and talked with such a condemnation of Athanasius. Eusebius was
man {Ep. clxviii.), and Gregory thought his so peremptory in refusing as to excite the anger
prayers for their welfare must be as efficacious of the Arianizing emperor, who banished him,
as those of a martyr. For Eusebius, concealed together with some priests and deacons, to
in exile, Basil contrived means of communica- Scythopolis in Syria. Patrophilus, a leading
tion with his old flock. Numerous letters passed Arian, was bp. there, and Eusebius calls him
between the two, more in the tone of young his " jailer." During his confinement here,
lovers than of old bishops, and some interesting two messengers arrived with money and
hints are given as to difficulty of communica- assurances of goodwill from the churches of
tion. Eusebius was eagerly longing for letters, Vercelli and neighbourhood. In his reply
while Basil protested that he had written no Eusebius gave full particulars of his annoying
fewer than four, which never reached their treatment at Scythopolis. He was a trouble-
destination. To Eusebius (ccxxxix.) Basil some prisoner, having twice all but starved
complains bitterly of the lack of fair dealinghimself to death because he would not accept
on the part of the Western church, and myste- provisions from Arian hands. After a while he
:

344 EUSEBIUS EUSEBIUS


was removed to Cappadocia, and thence to vol. the Rev. A. E. Bum offered proof that
Egypt. From theThebaid in Egypt he wrote Eusebius was the author of the work of Pseudo-
to Gregory, bp. of Elvira in Spain, praising his Vigilius, but that there are strong reasons
anti-Arian constancy. Julian, succeeding against supposing that he could have written
Constantius in 361, permitted all banished Quicunque, although he says the latter theory
bishops to return. Eusebius went to Alex- throws new light on the history of the theo-
andria to consult with Athanasius. The two logical terms used in the creed. [j.ll.d.]
bishops convoked a council in 362 at Alexand- Eusebius (96), Aug. 14, presbyter, confessor
ria. One of its objects was to end a schism at Rome A. D. 358, and by some styled martyr.
at Antioch, and after it was over Eusebius From the earliest times his fame has been every-
went thither to bear a synodal letter or where celebrated. A church dedicated to him
" tome " from the council to the Antiochenes. ismentioned in the first council held at Rome
But Lucifer of Cagliari had preceded him and under pope Symmachus, a.d. 498 (Mansi, viii.
aggravated the schism by the hasty consecra- 236, 237). It was rebuilt by pope Zacharias,
tion of Paulinus as a rival bishop and ;
c.742 (Anastas. Lib. Pontif. art. "Zacharias,"
Eusebius immediately withdrew from Antioch. No. 226). The facts of his history are very ob-
[Meletius Paulinus (6).] Lucifer re-
:
scure. His Acts (Baluz. A/j'sc^Z/. t. ii. p. 141)
nounced communion with Eusebius and with relate thatupon the recall of pope Liberius
all who, in accordance with the decree of the by Constantius, Eusebius preached against
Alexandrian council, were willing to receive them both as Arians and since the orthodox
;

back bishops who repented their connexion party, who now supported Felix, were ex-
with Arian heresy. Leaving Antioch, cluded from all the churches, he continued
Eusebius visited Eastern churches to confirm to hold divine service in his own house. For
them in the orthodox faith. Thence he this he was brought before Constantius and
passed into Illyria, and so to Italy, which, in Liberius, when he boldly reproved the pope
the words of Jerome, " put off its mourning for falling away from Catholic truth. Con-
on Eusebius's return." He now joined the stantius thereupon consigned him to a dungeon
zealous Hilary of Poictiers in endeavours to four feet wide, where he continued to languish
re-establish orthodoxy in the West. With for seven months and then died. He was
this view they stirred up opposition to the buried by his friends and co-presbyters Orosius
Arianizing Auxentius, bp. of Milan, but were and Gregory, in the cemetery' of Callistus, with
foiled by his profession of orthodoxy. This the simple inscription " Eusebio Homini Dei."
was in 364 nothing more is recorded of Euse-
;
Constantius arrested Gregory for this, and
bius until his death, placed by Jerome in 371. consigned him to the same dungeon, where he
His extant writings are three letters one : also died, and was in turn buried by Orosius,
a brief reply to Constantius, that he would by whom the Acts of Eusebius profess to ha\'e
attend the council at Milan, but would do been written. The Bollandist and Tillemont
there whatever should seem to him right and point out grave historical difficulties in this
according to the will of God and the two
;
narration, especially that Constantius, Libe-
to the church at Vercelli and to Gregory of rius, and Eusebius never could have been in
Elvira. They are in Galland, Bibl. Patrum, the city together. The whole matter is a
and Migne, Patr. Lat. t. xii. Jerome says that source of trouble to Roman Catholic writers,
Eusebius translated, omitting what was hetero- because the saintly character of St. Eusebius,
dox, the commentaries on the Psalms by his guaranteed by the Roman martyrology as
namesake of Caesarea and also names him,;
revised by pope Gregory XIII., seems neces-
with Hilary of Poictiers, as atranslatorof Origen sarily to involve the condemnation of Liberius.
and the same Eusebius but nothing further is
; The Bollandists at great length vindicate the
known of these translations. A famous Codex catholicity of Felix II., and are equally zealous
Vercellensis is thus described by Tregelles champions of St. Eusebius. Tillemont and
" A MS. of the 4th cent., said to have been Hefele (Hist, of Councils, ii. § 81, " Pope Libe-
written by the hand of Eusebius bp. of rius and the Third Sirmian Formula ") are
Vercelli, where the codex is now preserved. equally decided opponents of Felix, [g.t.s.]
The text is defective in several places, as Eusebius (99), of Cremona,presbyter, a friend
might be supposed from its very great age. of St. Jerome, through whose writings he is
It was transcribed and pub. by Irici, at known. He was with Jerome at Bethlehem in
Milan, in 1748. This MS. is probably the 393, and became the unconscious means of ex-
. . .

most valuable exemplar of the old Latin in its tending into Italy the strife concerning Origen-
imaltered state." The chief authority for ism which had begun at J erusalem. Epiphanius
his Life is St. Jerome, who places him amongst had written to J ohn, bp. of J erusalem, in vindi-
his Viri lllustres, and alludes to him in his cation of his conduct on his recent visit to
letters and elsewhere. There arc several Palestine, a.d. 394. Eusebius, not knowing
letters addressed to him by Liberius, and Greek, begged Jerome to translate it. This
allusions to him in .\thanasius. He is men- Jerome did in a cursory manner [ad Pammach'
tioned also by Rufinus, Theodoret, Sozomen, ium, Ep. 57, § 2, ed. Vail.), and the document
and Socrates. The Sermones relating to him was stolen JFrom the cell of Eusebius by one
among the works of Ambrose are admittedly whom Jerome believed to be in the service of
spurious. In the Joitrn. of Theol. Studies, vol. Rufinus {cont. Ruf. iii. 4). Rufinus apparently
i. p. 126, Mr. C. H. Turner raised the two sent the translated letter to Rome, accusing
questions whether Eusebius of Vercelli was Jerome of having falsified the original. Euse-
the author of the Seven Books on the Trinity bius remained at Bethlehem till Easter, 398,
by the Pseudo-Vigilius of Thapsus, and when he was obliged to return hastily to Italy.
whether he could have been the author of Qui- On arriving in Rome, he became an agent of
cunque VuU and subsequently in the same
; Jerome's party in. the Origenistic controversy.
EUSEBIUS EUSTATHIUS 345
He lived at first on good terms with Rufinus, then of Antioch, c. a.d. 324-331, designated by
who, however, afterwards accused him of Theodoret (H. E. i. 7) " the Great," one of the
having come to Rome " to bark against him." earliest and most vigorous opponents of Arian-
Rufinus was then engaged in translating the ism, venerated for his learning, virtues, and
wepi apx"^" o^ Origen for the use of his friends, eloquence (Soz. H. E. i. 2, ii. 19 ;Theod.
leaving out some of the most objectionable H. E. i. 20), recognized by Athanasius as a
passages. Eusebius sent a copy of this to worthy fellow-labourer for the orthodox faith
Bethlehem, where Jerome denounced it as a (Athan. Hist. Arian. § 5). He was a native of
mistranslation. Rufinus replied that Eusebius Side in Pamphylia (Hieron. de Vir. Illus. c.
had obtained an imperfect copy, either by 85). The title of " confessor " given him by
bribing the copyist or by other wrong means, Athanasius more than once (t. i. pp. 702, 812)
and had also tampered with the MS. St. indicates that he suffered in the persecution of
Jerome, however, vehemently defends his Diocletian. As bp. of Berrhoea he was one of
friend from these accusations {conf. Ruf. iii. 5). the orthodox prelates to whom Alexander of
Pope Anastasius being entirely ignorant of Alexandria sent a copy of his letter to Alex-
Origen and his teaching, Eusebius, together ander of Constantinople, concerning Arius and
with Marcella and Pammachius, brought be- his errors (Theod. H. E. i. 4). His translation
fore him certain passages from Origen's from Berrhoea is placed by Sozomen after the
writings (Anastasius ad Simplicianum in council of Nicaea (Soz. //.£. i. 2). Theodoret
Jerome, Ep. 95, ed. Vail.), which so moved states more correctly that he sat at that
him that he at once condemned Origen and all council as bp. of Antioch, and that his election
his works. Eusebius being about to return to to that see was the unanimous act of the
Cremona in 400, the pope charged him in bishops, presbyters, and faithful laity of the
the letter just quoted to Simplicianus, bp. of city and province (Theod. H.E. i. 7). Accord-
Milan, and he there set forth the same passages ing to Theodoret he was the immediate suc-
of Origen which he had laid before the pope. cessor of Philogonius ; but, according to the
He was confronted, however, by Rufinus, who Chronicle of Jerome, Theophanes, and others, a
declared these passages to be false ; and certain Paulinus, not the Paulinus of Tyre, in-
Eusebius continued his journey without tervened for a short time (Tillem. vol. vii. p. 22,
having induced Simplicianus to condemn n. i. p. 646). At the councilof Nicaea Eustathius
Origen. After this we hear nothing of occupied one of the first, if not the very first
Eusebius for some 20 years. He appears to place among the assembled prelates (Facund.
have remained in Italy supporting Jerome's viii. 4). That he occupied the seat of honour
interests and corresponding with him. At the at the emperor's right hand and pronounced
extreme end of Jerome's life we still find Euse- the panegyrical address to Constantine is
bius writing to him and sending him books asserted by Theodoret (H. E. i. 7), but contra-
relating to the Pelagian heresy (ad Alyp. et dicted by Sozomen (H. E. i. 19), who assigns
Aug. Ep. 143), and receiving from Jerome the the dignity to Eusebius of Caesarea. Euse-
last of his Commentaries, that on Jeremiah bius himself maintains a discreet silence, but
(Prol. to Conim. on J er. in vol. iv. 833). [w.h.f.1 he evidently wishes it to be inferred that the
Eussbius (126), eunuch, and grand chamber- place of honour was his own (Eus. de Vit.
lain under Constantius II. Socrates (ii. 2, 16) Const, iii. 11). On his return to Antioch
relates that, after the death of Constantine in Eustathius banished those of his clergy sus-
337, Eusebius of Nicomedia and Theognis of pected of Arian tenets and resolutely rejected
Nicaea, bestirring themselves on behalf of the all ambiguous submissions. Among those
Arians, made use of a certain presbyter in high whom he refused to receive were Stephen,
favour with Constantius, who had before been Leontius, 6 (X7r6\07ros, and Eudoxius (who
instrumental in recalling Arius from exile. successively occupied his episcopal seat after
He persuaded Eusebius the head chamberlain his deposition), George of Laodicea, Theo-
to adopt Arian opinions, and the rest of the dosius of Tripolis, and Eustathius of Sebaste
chamberlains followed, and prevailed on the (Athan. Hisf. Arian. § 5). In his writings and
empress also. In 339 Eusebius was the sermons he lost no opportunity of declaring
mainspring of the plan of Eudoxius and others the Nicene faith, and shewing its agreement
for dividing the council to be held on the sub- with Holy Scripture. Theodoret (H. E. i. 8)
ject of Arianism, making the Western bishops specially mentions one of his sermons on Prov.
sit at Rimini, the Eastern at Seleucia part
;
viii. 22, and gives a long extract. The
of those in the secret were to sit at each troubled relations of Eustathius with the two
council, and try to gain over their opponents Eusebii may be dated from the council of
to Arian views. Laj'men of influence favoured Nicaea. At this synod Eusebius of Caesarea
the plan in order to please the chamberlain and Eustathius were rivals both in theological
(Soz. H. E. iv. 16). On the death of Constantius views and for favour with the emperor. To
in 361 Eusebius tried to curry favour with one of Eustathius's uncompromising ortho-
Julian by assuring him of the loyalty of the doxy, Eusebius appeared a foe to the truth,
East (Amm. xxi. 15, § 4) but was unable to
; the more dangerous on account of his ability
avert what Ammianus and Philostorgius re- and the subtlety which veiled his heretical
present as the just reward of his deeds. One proclivities.
i Eustathius denounced him as
of the first acts of Julian was to condemn departing from the Nicene faith. Eusebius
I

him to death (ib. xxii. 3, § 12). Ammianus retorted with the charge of Sabellianism.
describes him as the prime mover of all the accusing Eustathius of holding one only per,
court intrigues of his day, and sarcastically sonality in the Deity (Socr. H. E. i. 23 Soz- ;

calls the emperor one of his favourites (ib. H. E. ii. 18 Theod. H. E. i. 21). Eusebius
;

Xviii. 4, § 33). [W.M.S. AND M.F.A.] of Nicomedia and Theognis of Nicaea, in their
Eustathius (3), bp. of Berrhoea in Syria, progress of almost royal magnificence to
;

346 EUSTATHIUS EUSTATHIUS


Jerusalem, passed through Antioch, and had heretic (Basil. Ep. 244 [82], § 9). Few in that
a fraternal reception from Eustathius, and epoch of conflicting creeds and formularies
left with every appearance of friendship. ever signed more various documents. Basil
Their inspection of the sacred buildings over, enumerates his signature of the formularies of
Eusebius returned to Antioch with a large Ancyra, Seleucia, Constantinople, Lampsacus,

cortege of partisan bishops Aetius of Lydda, Nice in Thrace, and Cyzicus, which are
Patrophilus of Scythopolis, Theodotus of sufficiently diverse to indicate the vagueness
Laodicea, and Eusebius of Caesarea. The of his theology (Basil. I.e.). Eustathius thus
cabal entered Antioch with the air of masters. naturally forfeited the confidence of all schools
The plot had been maturing in their absence. of theology. His personal character appears
Witnesses were prepared with charges against to have been high. There must have been
the bishop of incontinency and other gross something more than common in a man who
crimes. Eustathius was summoned before could secure the affection and respect for many
this self-constituted tribunal, and, despite the years of Basil the Great, as, in Basil's own
opposition of the better-minded bishops and strong language, " exhibiting something more
the absence of trustworthy evidence, was than man" (Ep. 212 [370I, § 2). As bishop
condemned for heresy, profligacy, and tyran- he manifested his care for the sick and needy,
nical conduct, and deposed from his bishopric. and was unwearied in the fulfilment of duty.
This aroused the indignation of the people of The system of coenobitic monasticism intro-
Antioch, who took up arms in defence of their duced by him into Asia Basil took as his model
beloved bishop. Some of the magistrates and (Soz. H. E. iii. 14 Basil. Ep. 223 [79], § 3).
;

other officials headed the movement. An Eustathius was born in the Cappodocian
artfullv coloured account of these disturbances Caesarea towards the beginning of the 4tH
and Eustathius's complicity in them was cent. He studied at Alexandria under the
transmitted to Constantine. A count was heresiarch Arius (c. a.d. 320) (Basil. Ep. 223
dispatched to quell the sedition and to put the [79]. § 3: 244 [82], § 9 ; 263 [74], § 3). On
sentence of the council into execution. Eus- leaving Alexandria he repaired to Antioch,
tathius submitted to constituted authority. where he was refused ordination on account
Accompanied by many of his clergy, he left of his Arian tenets by his orthodox namesake
Antioch without resistance or manifesting any (Athan. Solit. p. 812). He was afterwards
resentment (Socr. H. E. i. 24 ;Soz. H. E. ii. ordained by Eulalius (c. 331), but very speed-
iq; Theod. H. E. i. 21 ; Philost. H. E. ii. 7 ;
ily degraded by him for refusing to wear the
Eus. Vit. Const, iii. 59). He appears to have clerical dress (Socr. H. E. ii. 43, Soz. H. E.
spent the larger part of his exile at Philippi, iv. 24). From Antioch Eustathius returned
where he died, c. 337. The date of his de- to Caesarea, where he obtained ordination
position was probably at the end of 330 or from the orthodox bp. Hermogenes, on de-
beginning of 331 (Tillem. Mem. eccl. vol. vii. claring his unqualified adhesion to the Nicene
note 3, sur Saint Eustathe ; Wetter, Resti- faith (Basil. Ep. 244 [82], § 9 ; 263 [74], § 3).
tutio verae Chronolog. rerum contra Arian. Gest. ;
On the death of Hermogenes, Eustathius
de Bro^We.L'Eglise et V Empire, c. -vu.). The repaired to Constantinople and attached him-
deposition of Eustathius led to a lamentable self to Eusebius, the bishop there, " the Cory-
schism in the church of Antioch, which lasted phaeus of the Arian party " (Basil, ll.cc.).
nearly a century, not being completely healed By him he was a second time deposed (f. a.d.
till the episcopate of Alexander, a.d. 413-420. 342) on the ground of some unspecified act of
Eustathius was a copious writer, and is unfaithfulness to duty (Soz. H. E. iv. 24).
much praised by early authorities (Soz. H. E. He retired again to Caesarea, where, carefully
ii. 19; Hieron. Ep. 70 [84], ad Magnum). concealing his Arian proclivities, he sought
We possess only scattered fragments and one to commend himself to the bishop, Dianius.
entire work, named by Jerome de Engas- His subsequent history till he became bp. of
trimythn adv. Origenem. In this he attacks Sebaste is almost a blank. We must, how-
Origen with great vehemence, ridicules him as ever, assign to it the theological argument held
a TToXutcTTwp, and controverts his idea that the by him and Basil of Ancyra with the audacious
prophet Samuel was actually called up by the Anomoean, Aetius, who is regarded by Basil
witch of Endor (Gall. Vet. Pair. Bihl. vol', iv., as in some sense Eustathius's pupil (Basil.
and Migne, Pair. vol. xviii. pp. 614 ff.). In Ep. 123, § 5). It was certainly during this
Texteund Untersiichungen(iS86),u. 4, anewed. period that Eustathius and his early friend
of this treatise was edited by A. Zahn. Fabr. the presbyter Aerius founded coenobitic
Btbl. Graec. vol. ix. pp- 131 ff- ed. Harles Cave, monachism in Armenia and the adjacent
;

Hist. Lit. i. 187


; Migne, Patr. t. ix. pp. 131 ff. provinces (Epiphan. Haer. 75, § 2). The rule
Tillem. h.s. pp. 21 ff. ; De Broglie, op. cit. t. ii. laid down by him for the government of his
pp. 294 ff- [e-v.] religious communities of both sexes contained
Eustathius (41, bp. of Sebaste (the modern extravagances alluded to by Socrates and
Siwas) in Pontus, on the N. bank of the Halys, Sozomen, which are not imlikely to have been
the capital of Armenia Minor (c. a.d. 357-380). the cause, otherwise unknown, of his excom-
Eustathius occupies a place more conspicuous munication by the council of Neo-Caesarea
than honourable in the unhappy dissensions (Socr. H. E. ii. 43 Soz. H. E. iv. 24).
; While
between the adherents of the orthodox faith Eustathius was regulating his coenobitic foun-
and the various shades of Arian, semi-Arian, dations {c. 358) he was visited by Basil, who
and Anomoean heresy during the middle of records the delight with which he saw the
the 4th cent. Originally a disciple of Arius, coarse garments, the girdle, the sandals of
after repeated approaches to the Nicene faith, undressed hide, and witnessed the self-denying
with occasional professions of accepting it, he and laborious lives of Eustathius and his fol-
probaby ended his days as a Eunomian lowers. His admiration for such a victory
EUSTATHIUS EUSTATHIUS 347
over the world and the flesh dispelled all Ancyra, Eleusius of Cyzicus,
J erusalem, Basil of
suspicions of Arian sentiments, and the desire and other important prelates. Eustathius was
to spread them secretly, which had been not even allowed to defend himself. His former
rumoured (Basil. Ep. 223 [79], § 3). After deposition by Eulalius was held sufficient (Socr.
Basil had retired to thebanks of the Iris and H. E. ii. 41-43 Soz. H. E. iv. 24). Constan-
;

commenced his own monastic life, he and his tius confirmed the sentence, exiled the bishops,
brother Gregory received frequent visits from and gave their sees to others. The death of
Eustathius, who, with them, would visit An- Constantius in 361 and the accession of Julian
nesi, the residence of their mother Macrina, and witnessedtherecallof Eustathius with the other
spend there whole days and nights in friendly banished bishops. He immediately repudiated
theological discussion (ib. § 5). his signature to the creed of Ariminum, and did
Eustathius's episcopate must have begun all he could to shew his horror of pure Arianism.
before 357, when Athanasius speaks of him Sozomen tells us that, with Eleusius, Sophronius,
as a bishop (Athan. Oral, in Arian. i. p. 290 ;
and others of like mind, he held several synods,
Solit. p. 812). He was made bp. of Sebaste, condemning the partisans of Acacius, denounc-
according to the same authority, by the Arian ing the creed of Ariminum, and asserting the
party, who hoped to find him an able and Homoiousion as the true mean between the
facile instrument. His early companion Aerius Homoousion of the West and the Anomoeon of
was a candidate for the bishopric, and felt very Aetius and his followers (H. E. v. 14). With the
mortified by his failure. Eustathius shewed accession of Valens in 364, Arianism once more
him the utmost consideration, ordained him assumed ascendancy in the East. The semi-
presbyter, and appointed him manager of a Arian party, or Macedonians as they now began
refuge for the poor, the foundation of which tobecalled, met by imperial permissionin coun-
was one of the first acts of his episcopate. cil at Lampsacus A.D. 365, under the presidency
The final rupture between them is detailed of Eleusius. and repudiated the Acacian council
under Aerius. Somewhere about this time of Constantinople (360) and the creed of Ari-
we may place Eustathius's conviction of minum, renewed the confession of Antioch {In
perjury in the council of Antioch (see Socr. Encaeniis), and pronounced sentence of de-
H. E. iv. 24), and his deposition by the position on Eudoxius and Acacius (Socr. H. E.
obscure council of Melitene in Armenia c. a.d. iv. 2-4; Soz. H. E. vi. 7). These proceedings
357 (Basil. Ep. 263 [74]). Neither of these irritated Valens, who required them to hold
events appears to have entailed any lasting communion with Eudoxius, and, on their
consequences. Eustathius was one of the refusal, sentenced them to fine and banish-
prelates at the semi-Arian synod summoned ment, giving their sees to others. To escaj>e
at Ancyra by George of Laodicea, before annihilation, the Macedonians sent deputies,
Easter a.d. 358, to check the alarming spread Eustathius being one, to the Western emperor
of Anomoean doctrines, and he, with Basil of Valentinian and Liberius, bp. of Rome, who
Ancyra and Eleusius of Cyzicus, conveyed the had repented his lapse in a.d. 3=i7, offering to
synodal letter, equally repudiating the Ano- unite with them in faith. Before they ar-
moean and Homoousian doctrines, and de- rived, Valentinian had left for Gaul, and
claring for the Homoiousion, to Constantius Liberius, at first looking coldly on them as
at Sirmium (Soz. H. E. iv. 13, 14 ; Basil. Ep. Arians, refused toreceive them. On their giving
263 [74], § 3). When the council met at a written adhesion to the Nicene Creed and the
Seleucia on Sept. 27, 359, Eustathius occupied Homoousion, he received them into communion,
a prominent place in its tumultuous and in- and gave them letters in his name and that of
decisive proceedings, and was the head of the the Western church to the prelates of the East,
ten episcopal deputies, Basil of Ancyra, Sil- expressing his satisfaction at the proof he had
vanus of Tarsus, and Eleusius of Cyzicus being received of the identity of doctrinebet ween East
other chief members, sent to Constantinople and West (Socr. H. E. iv. 12 Soz. H. E. vi. it).
;

to lay their report before Constantius. Stormy No mention was made of the new Macedonian
discussions followed, in which Eustathius led heresy concerning the Holy Spirit, now in-
the semi-Arians as against the pure Arians. fecting the Eastern church, of which Eustathius
He vehemently denounced the blasphemies of and the other deputies were among the chief
the bold Anomoean, Eudoxius, bp. of Antioch, promulgators. Eustathius and his companions
and produced a formulary of faith declaring the at once repaired to Sicily, where a synod of
dissimilarity of the Father and the Son, which bishops, on their profession of orthodoxy, gave
he asserted to be by Eudoxius. All seemed themlettersof communion. Theythenreturned
to augur the triumph of orthodoxy when the to their own country. A synod of orthodox
arrival of Valens and Ursacius from Ariminum bishops was assembled in 367 at Tyana, to re-
announcing the subjugation of the Western ceive the letters of communion from the West
bishops and the general proscription of the and other documents (Soz. I.e. Basil. Ep. 244
;

Homoousion suddenly changed the scene. [82], § 5). Eustathius and his fellow-delegates,
Constantius was overjoyed at the unexpected now recognized as true Catholics, were ac-
success, and after a protracted discussion, knowledged as the rightful bishops of their
compelled Eustathius and the other Seleucian sees. A council summoned at Tarsus to con-
deputies to sign the fatal formulary. It was solidate this happy reunion was prohibited by
then, in Jerome's words, " ingemuit totus Valens, who, having committed himself to the
orbis et se esse Arianum miratus est " (Hieron. Arian party, issued an edict expelling all bishops
in Lucif. 19). This base concession profited restored by J ulian. Eustathius, to save himself,
the recreants little. The emperor summoned signed a formula at Cyzicus of Homoiousian
a svnod, of which Acacius was the ruling spirit, character, which also denied the divinity of the
at Constantinople in Jan. 360. Eustathius was Holy Spirit. Basil says tersely of Eustathius
deposed in a tyrannical manner, with C>-ril of and his party, "they saw Cyzicus and returned
348 EUSTATHIUS EUSTATHIUS
with a different creed" (Basil, u.s. and § 9; authority, has been denied by Blondel {De la
226 [73])- .
primaute, p. 138), Baronius {Annul, iii. ann.
.

361, n. 53), Du Pin {Nouvelle bibliotheque, ii.


,
On Basil's elevation to the episcopate in
370 Eustathius exhibited great joy, and pro- 339), and called in question by Tillemont
fessed an earnest desire to be of service to his {Mem. eccl. ix. note 28, S. Bustle) ; but on
friend. He recommended persons as fellow- careful investigation Hefele {Hist, of the Church
helpers who, as Basilbitterly complains, turned Councils, ii. 325 ff. Engl, trans.) scouts the
out to be spies of his actions and words, inter- idea that another Eustathius is intended. C.
preting all in a malevolent sense and reporting F. Loofs, Eust. of Seb., Halle, 1898. [e.v.]
to their chief {ib. 223 [79], § 3)- For their Eustathius (22), bp. of Berytus (Beyrout), a
subsequent bitter relations, see Basilius time-serving prelate attached to the court, who
OF Caesarea. Eustathius heaped calumnies kept steadily in view the aggrandizement and
on the head of his former associate, openly independence of his see of Berytus, then
charging him with Apollinarian and other suffragan to Tyre. As a bishop of some
heretical views, and encouraged the clergy consideration for theological knowledge, he
of his diocese and province to form a rival was appointed commissioner, with Photius of
communion. Demosthenes, the Vicar of the Tyre and Uranius of Himera, by Theodosius
Prefect, an old enemy of Basil, strenuously II., A.D. 448, to examine the tenets of Ibas of
forwarded this object. In 376 he visited Edessa, charged by the monastic party with
Sebaste and other chief places in the province, favouring the Nestorian heresy. This com-
oppressing Basil's adherents, whom he com- mission, dated Oct. 26, 448, and addressed to
pelled to undertake onerous and costly public Damasus, the secretary of state (Labbe, Cone.
duties, and loading the followers of Eustathius iv. 638), was opened at Berytus, Feb. i, a.d.
with the highest honours {ib. 237 [264], § 2). 449, in the residence of Eustathius, recently
Eustathius, seeing Arianism in the ascendant, erected by him near his magnificent new
openly sought communion with those whom he Ibas indignantly disclaimed the
church.
had repeatedly denounced. His deposition at blasphemies attributed to him, and produced
Constantinoplewasnot forgottenbythe Arians, a protest, signed by a large number of his
who had not hitherto recognized him as a canon-
clergy, that they had never heard him utter
ical bishop. He now sought their goodwill by words contrary to the faith {ib. p. 637). The
humiliating concessions. He had overthrown accusation broke down. But the investiga-
thealtarsofBasilides,bp.ofGangra,asanArian, tion was revived a week or two afterwards at
but now begged admission to his communion. Tyre (ib. 635). Eustathius and his brother
He hadtreatedthepeople of Amasea as heretics, commissioners drew up a concordat, which
excommunicating Elpidius for holding inter- was signed, Feb. 25, by Ibas and his accusers,
course with them, and now earnestly sought and countersigned by Eustathius and Photius
their recognition. At Ancyra, the Arians {ib. 632). At the second council of Ephesus,
refusing him public recognition, he submitted the disgraceful " Robbers' Synod," Aug. 8,
to communicate with them in private houses. 449, Eustathius, Eusebius of Ancyra, and Basil
When the Arian bishops met in synod at Nyssa of Seleucia were the imperial commissioners
he sent a deputation of his clergy to invite them {ib. 1079). Eustathius lent all his influence to
to Sebaste, conducted them through the pro- Dioscorus and the dominant party against the
vince with every mark of honour, allowed them venerable Flavian, voting for the rehabilita-
to preach and celebrate the Eucharist in his tion of Eutyches and declaring that he had
churches, and withheld no mark of the most stated the true faith in perfect conformity to
intimate communion {ib. 257 [72], § 3). These the doctrine of godliness {ib. 262). In 450,
humiliations had but tardy and partial success through the influence of pope Leo and his
in obtaining his public acknowledgment by the legates at Constantinople, Eustathius's name
dominant ecclesiastics. His efforts to secure was erased from the diptychs of the church as
Arian favour and his effrontery in trading upon an accomplice in Flavian's violent death. He
his former recognition by Liberius extorted and his associates, however, were allowed to re-
from Basil a vehement letter of remonstrance, tain their sees, in the hope that this leniency
addressed to the bp. of Rome and the other might lead them to repent (Leo Magn. Ep. 60).
Western bishops, depicting the evils inflicted The feebleTheodosius II. being nowreplaced by
on the Eastern church by the wolves in sheep's the orthodox and vigorous Marcian, Eustathius
clothing, and requesting Liberius to declare found it politic to change his camp, and at the
publicly the terms on which Eustathius had been council of Chalcedon promptly abandoned Dios-
admitted to communion {ib. 263 [74], § 3). All corus, declaring his agreement in faith with
mark of sympathy
Basil's efforts to obtain this Flavian, and with exaggerated expressions of
and brotherly recognition from the West were penitence asking pardon for his share in the acts
fruitless.He continued to be harassed by the of the recent synod (Labbe, iv. 141, 176, 177).
unscrupulous attacks of Eustathius till his The abject humiliation of Eustathius and his
death in 379. If the see was vacated by his party prevailed with the orthodox bishops, who
death, and not, as Hefele holds, with much acquitted them as mere tools of Dioscorus and
probability, by his deposition at Gangra, Eusta- received them as brothers {ib. 508-309). At
thius died soon after. In 380 Peter became bp. a later session of the council, Oct. 20, the issue
of Sebaste, and thus Basil's brother replaced between Eustathius and Photius of Tyre was
Basil's most dangerous enemy. discussed {ib. 539). As a reward for his sup-
The synod of Gangra, of uncertain date port of the court party at the " Latrocinium,"
[D. C. A., S.V.], is intimately connected with Eustathius had obtained from Theodosius a
the name of Eustathius. The identity of the decree giving metropolitical rank to Berytus
Eustathius there condemned with the bp. of (Lupus, in Canon. 950). Flavian's successor
Sebaste, though affirmed by every ancient Anatolius, together with Maximus of Antioch
EUSTOCHIUM EUTHALIUS 349
and other court bishops, had consequently, at is reckoned a saint in the Roman church, her
the close of 449, dismembered the diocese of festival being Sept. 28. [w.h.f. j

Tyre and assigned five churches to the for- EustOOhiUS (6), patriarch of Jerusalem, in
merly suffragan see of Berytus (Labbe, iv. succession to Peter, and, according to Pape-
542-546). Photius, disregarding this, and broch, from a.d. 544 to 556. On the death of
continuing to consecrate bishops for these Peter, Eustochius, oeconomus of the church
churches, was excommunicated by Anatolius, of Alexandria but residing at Constantinople,
and the prelates he had consecrated were was favoured by the emperor Justinian in
deposed and degraded by Eustathius lib. 530). preference to Macarius, an Origenist, who
Photius submitted to this interference on the had been first elected. At the synod of Con-
threat of deposition, protesting that he did so stantinople, 553, Eustochius was represented
by constraint. The council supported him, by three legates, Stephanus bp. of Raphia.
maintained the ancient prerogatives of the Georgius bp. of Tiberias, Damasus bp. of
metropolitical see of Tyre, and pronounced the Sozusa or Sozytana (Mansi, ix. 173 c.) and;

acts of Eustathius void. when the acts in condemnation of Origenism


When in 457 the emperor Leo, anxious to were sent by the emperor to Jerusalem, all the
give peace to the church of Alexandria, dealt bishops of Palestine except Alexander of Abila
with the intrusion of Timothy Aelurus, confirmed them. But in the monasteries of
Eustathius was consulted, and joined in the that province, and especially in that named
condemnation of that intruding patriarch {ib. the New Laura, the partisans of the proscribed
890). The church built by Eustathius at opinions grew daily more powerful, notwith-
Berytus is described by Zacharias Scholasticus standing the resolute efforts of the patriarch
as de mundi opificio. Tillem. Mem. eccl. xv. ; Le against them. In 555, after eight months of
Quien, Oriens Christ, ii. 818 ; Cave, Hist. Lit. persistent admonition, Eustochius went in
i. 440. [e.v.] person, with the dux Anastasiu?, to the New
Eustochium, 3rd daughter of Paula, the Laura, and forcibly expelled the whole body,
friend of Jerome, from whose writings all that replacing them by 60 monks from the prin-
is known of her is gathered. Born probably cipal laura and 60 from other orthodox mon-
c. 370, she had shared from her earliest days the asteries of the desert, under the prior Joannes.
ascetic views of her mother, and was confirmed Origenism was thus rooted out of Palestine.
in them by frequenting the house of Marcella According to Victor Tununensis, Eustochius
(Hieron. i. 952, ed. Vallarsi). Her uncle Hymet- was removed from the patriarchate, and
tius, with his wife Praetextata (see Thierry's Macarius restored. C>Tillus Scythopol. in
St. Jerome, i. 161), endeavoured to wean her Coteler. Monuni. Eccles. Graec. iii. 373 Evagr.
;

from these by inviting her to their house, H. E. iv. 37, 38 Victor Tunun. in Patr. Lat.
;

changing her attire, and placing her among the Ixviii. 962 a ; Theoph. Chronog. a.m. 6060 ;

mirrors and the flattery of a patrician recep- Papebroch, Patriarch. Hierosol. in Boil. Acta
tion-room (Hieron. i. 394, 683) but she re-
, SS. Intro, to vol. iii. of May, p. xxvii. Le ;

sisted their seductions and took the vow of per- Quien, Or. Chr. iii. 210. Pagi (ann. 561 iii.)
petual virginity, being the first Roman lady of discusses the chronology. See also Clinton,
noble birth to do so (i. 394). Jerome addressed F. R. 537. 557- [ch.I
to her his celebrated treatise de Virginitate Ser- EuthaliUS (5), a deacon of Alexandria, after-
vanda (i. 88), in which vivid pictures of Roman wards bp. of Sulca; fl. a.d. 459. This date is
society enforce the superior sanctity of the confirmed by the fact that his works are
state of virginity. This treatise excited great dedicated to Athanasius the Younger, who was
animosity against Jerome, and was one cause bp. of Alexandria about that time. Euthalius
of his leaving Rome and returning to Pales- appears to have been then a deacon, devoted
tine. Paula and Eustochium resolving to go to the study of the N.T. text. He is now best
there also, embarked in 385 at Portus. At knov.'n as the author of the Euthalian Sections.
Bethlehem they built and managed the hospice The books of N.T. were written without any
and convent, and from her mother's death in division into chapters, verses, or words. The
404 Eustochium was its head till her own death first steps towards such a convenient division
in 418,two years before that of Jerome. Many seem to have proceeded from the wish for easy
passages in Jerome's writings give a picture of reference to parallel passages. This was done
her character and manner of life. Small in by what are known as the Ammonian Sections,
stature (i. 290), she had great courage and de- together with the EusebianCanons. [Eusebius
cision of character (i. 394), and followed the OF Caesarea.] Ammonius of Alexandria, in
ascetic teaching of J erome and her mother with the 3rd cent., is generally credited with divid-
unwavering confidence and enthusiasm (i. 402, ing the gospels into sections, but the principle
403). She spoke Greek and Latin with equal had not been applied to other books of N.T.
facility, and learnt Hebrew to sing the Psalms Euthalius introduced a system of division
in the original (i. 720). Jerome praises her into all those not yet divided, except the
skill in the training of virgins, whom she led Apocalypse, which spread rapidly over the whole
in all acts of devotion (i. 290) and to whom she Greek church and has become, by its presence
set an example by undertaking all menial or absence, a valuable test of the antiquitv of a
offices (i. 403). She was eager to increase her MS. In the Epp. of St. Paul, Euthalius tells us,
knowledge of the Scriptures, and to her im- he adopted the scheme of a certain " father,"
portunity Jerome ascribes the writing of many whose name is nowhere given. But by his
of his commentaries, which were dedicated to other labours, and the further critical appar-
her and her mother, and afterwards to her and atus which he supplied, Euthalius procured
her niece the younger Paula, who, with the for it the acceptance it soon obtained. In
younger Melania, was her coadjutor in her Romans there were 19 capitula; in Galatians,
convent work and her study of Scripture. She 12; in Ephesians, 10 in /. Thessalonians, 7 ;
;
350 EUTflALlUS fiUTHERlUS
in //. Thessalonians, 6 ; in Hebrews, 22 in ;
In later life he became a bishop, and was
Philemon, 2 ; and so on. known as Episcopus Sulcensis. Scrivener sug-
Three points in connexion with the text gests Sulci in Sardinia as the only see of that
especially occupied Euthalius. name (Intr. p. 53, n. i), but so distant a place
(i) The Larger Sections or Lessons. Fixed is unlikely. Zacagnius thinks that Sulca may
lessons for public worship no doubt passed represent Psilca, a city of the Thebaid near
from the synagogue into the Christian church, Syene ; but Galland throws doubt on this, and
at least as soon as the canon was settled. But the point must be left unsolved.
there seems to have been little or no uniformity His works remained long unknown, but in
in them. Individual churches had divisions 1698 they were ed. andpub. at RomebyLauren-
of their own. The scheme proposed by tius Alexander Zacagnius, praefect of the
Euthalius, however, speedily became general Vatican Library, in vol. i. of his Collectanea
in all Greek-speaking churches. The whole Monumentorum Veterum Ecclesiae Graecae ac
N.T., except the Gospels and Apocalypse, was Latinae, in the long preface of which different
divided into 57 portions of very varying length questions relating to Euthalius are discussed
(in Acts there were 16 in the Pauline Epp. 31
; ;
with much care. This ed. has been printed in
5 in Rom. 5 in /. Cor.
; 4 in //. Cor.;
in the ; Galland (Biblioth. Pat. x. 197) and in Migne
Catholic Epp. 10; 2 in James 2 in /. Pe.; 1 in ; (Pair. G/j.lxxxv.62i). Noticesof Euthaliusmay
IT. Pe., etc.) Of these, 53 were for Sundays, be found in the Prolegomena of N. T. of Wetstein
which seem alone to have been provided for in and Mill, and in Scrivener's /m/j-o. /o /fc^ Cn'/tctsw
the Alexandrian Sytiaxes, andMillsupposesthat of N.T. But much light has recently been
the other 4 were for Christmas, Good Friday, thrown on Euthalius by Dean Armitage Rob-
Easter, and Epiphany (Proleg. in N.T. p. 90). inson in his " Euthaliana " {Texts and Stud.--,
(2) The smaller divisions were the well- iii. 3), and in an article "Recent Work on Eutha-

known (TTixoi i-e. " lines " (Lat. versus), each lius " in the Journ. of Theol. Stud. vol. vi. p.
containing either a few words complete in 87, Oct. 1904. In the latter art. the recent work
themselves, or as much as it was possible to on the subject by Von Soden and Zahn is
read without effort at one breath. Like that noticed. [w.m.]
of the capitula formerly spoken of, the plan of EutheriUS (2), bp. of Tyana, a leader of the
these " verses" was not introduced by Eutha- Nestorians at the council of Ephesus, a.d. 431,
lius. It had already been adopted in some of and for some time afterwards. Before the
the poetical books, and in poetical parts of the council he was in active correspondence with
prose books of the O.T. The LXX had John of Antioch, about the alleged Apollin-
occasionally employed it. It had been sanc- arianism of Cyril of Alexandria and his
tioned by Origen. The Vulgate had used it, adherents (Theod. Ep. 112 Migne, Patr. Gk,
;

and it is found in the psalms of the Vatican Ixxxiii. 1310). His name occurs in the various
and Sinaitic MSS. It had been partially documents addressed to, and issued by, the
applied to N.T., for Origen speaks of the 100 members of his party collectively at this
ffrixoi of //. and ///. John, of a few in St. council. On July 18 John and his adherents
Paul's Epistles, and very few in /. John while ;
were deposed and excommunicated, and
Eustathius of Antioch, in the 4th cent., is said Eutherius among them (Act. Co. Eph. acta
to reckon 135 from John viii. 59 to x. 31 V. 654) his sentence being confirmed at
;

(Scrivener, Intro, to Codex D, p. 17). But Constantinople before the end of the year.
these figures shew that many of these divisions After his return home we find him in friendly
cannot have been arixoi in the strict sense, but correspondence with Firmus of Caesarea,
of very unequal length, and generally much notwithstanding the part Firmus had taken
larger. What was before partially and im- in his excommunication (Firm. F.p. 23 ;
Patr.
perfectly done Euthalius extended upon better Gk. Ixxvii. 1498). Firmus was sent to Tyana
principles and with greater care. In Rom. he to ordain a successor to Eutherius, and
made 920 such orix"' '^ ^^'- ^93 in Eph.
> ;
met with great opposition from the citizens,
312 ;in /. Thess. 193 in //. Thess. 106 ; in ;
who were much attached their bishop.
to
Heb. 703 in Philemon, 37
; and so on. ;
Longras also, the imperial officer in command
(3) The third part of his labour was an of the Isaurian troops there, interfered ;

enumeration of all the quotations from O.T., and both Firmus and the person whom he
and even from profane writers, found in those had ordained were compelled to flee. The
books of N.T. of which he treated. These newly ordained bishop renounced his orders,
he numbered in one catalogue assigned to the ;
and seems to have returned to lay life (Theod.
various books whence they were taken in a Ep. Hypomnesticon Alex. Hierapolis Synodi-
second and quoted at length in a third. If
;
con, c. After the reconciliation of
45).
we may look upon the Argumenta as really Cyril and Johnof Antioch, Eutherius wrote to
the work of Euthalius, and not, as Zacagnius John to remonstrate with him on his incon-
argues (Praef. p. 60), as the production of a sistencv and want of loyalty to what he once
later hand, he went also into the substance and contended for (/6. c. 73, «.s. 681) to Alexander ;

meaningof thebookseditedbyhim, asthe.4rgM- of Hierapolis, who was opposed to the recon-


menta contain short and excellent summaries of ciliation, a long letter ably defending the posi-
them. Euthalius also wrote a short Life of St. tion which the v and others were stilldetermined
Paul, prefixed to his work on the 14 epistles of to maintain \ib. c. 201, u.s. 815) and to ;

that apostle, but it is bald and meagre. It has Helladius bp. of Tarsus, who had also written
been said that he also wrote comments on to Alexander, to encourage him in his oppo-
Acts and Luke and that in an ancient catena
; sition, expressing great joy at what he had done
on Romans there were fragments of his (ib.c. 74, M.S. 684). Eutherius was ultimately
writings but these statements seem to be
; banished to Scythopolis, and from thence to
ucorrect (ib. p. 71). Tyre, where he died [ib. c. 190, u.s.).
EUTHYMrUS EUTYCHES, EUTYCHlANISM 3Sl

He is the author of a treatise in 17 chapters, had been present, brought them to their
with a prefatory letter addressed to Eusta- master. The report of his approval spread
thius bp. of Parnassus, which Photius ascribed through the desert, and all the recluses would
to Theodoret (Phot. Biblioth. c. xlvi. Migne, have shared it but for the influence of the
Patr. Gk. ciii. 79), and which lias since been monk Theodosius, whose life and doctrine
attributed by some to Maximus the Martyr, appear to have been equally unsatisfactory,
and by others to Athanasius (Garner's notes who even tried hard to persuade Euthymius
on Marius Mercator in Patr. Lat. xlviii. 759, to reject Chalcedon, but without success.
1086, 1087 ; Fabricius, Biblioth. Gmec. ed. The empress Eudoxia, an energetic Euty-
Harles, viii. 304), in which he subjects the chian, after the death of her husband in 450,
" Scholia" of Cyril of Alexandria, " de Incar- went to Jerusalem, and being urged by her
natione Unigeniti " (Mar. Merc. u.s. 1066) to brother Valerius to become reconciled to the
elaborate and searching criticism, [t.w.d.] Catholic church, determined to consult
Euthymius (4), abbat in Palestine, born in Euthymius. She built a tower about 4 miles
377, at Melitene in Armenia, and placed at an S. of his laura, and sent to him Cosmas,
early age under the direction of its bishop, guardian of the so-called True Cross at Con-
Otreius. After his ordination as priest he was stantinople, and Anastasius, a bishop. Euthy-
placed in charge of all the monasteries in and mius came ; and after giving his blessing to
near the place. Pinding this too great an the empress, advised her that the violent
interruption to his meditations, in his 29th death of her son-in-law, Valentinian, the
year he escaped to Jerusalem to visit the holy irruption of the Vandals, the captivity of her
places, and found a home with a community daughter Eudoxia and of her grandchildren,
of separate monks at Pharan, 6 miles from might all be attributed to her Eutychian
Jerusalem. With another hermit, Theoc- opinions. She should abjure her schism, and
tistus, he used to take long walks into the embrace the communion of Juvenal, patriarch
desert of Cutila at sacred seasons. On one of of Jerusalem. The empress obeyed, and her
these occasions, in the 5th year of his stay at example was followed by a multitude of monks
Pharan, they came to a tremendous torrent and laymen. A celebrated anchoret also,
with a cavern on one of its banks. Here they Gerasimus, owed his separation from Euty-
determined to live, lost to the world. They chianism to Euthymius. Euthymius died
were, however, discovered by some shepherds, in 473 ; his obsequies were celebrated by the
who sent them gifts. The fathers of Pharan patriarch Anastatius and a large number of
also found them out, and came at times to clergy, among whom are mentioned Chrysip-
see them. About 411 Euthymius began to pus, guardian of the Cross, and a deacon named
receive disciples. They turned the cavern Fidus. See Cotelier's ed. of the V'ita Euthymii
into a church, and built a monastery on the by Cyrillus Scythopolitanus (Cot. Eccl. Grace.
side of the ravine. Theoctistus had charge Monuni. iv. i, Paris, 1692). [w.m.s.]
of it. In 420 Euthymius erected a laura, like Eutyches (4) and Eutychianism. Eutyches
that of Pharan, on the road from Jerusalem to was archimandrite of a monastery near Con-
Jericho, where he would see inquirers on stantinople. For 70 years (as he told pope
Saturdays and Sundays, and his advice was Leo) he had lived a monastic life, and during
always given with captivating sweetness and 30 out of them had presided over his 300
humility. In 428 the church of his laura was monks. He was a staunch upholder of the
consecrated by Juvenal, the first patriarch of views and conduct of Cyril of Alexandria,
Jerusalem, accompanied by the presbyter who had even sent him, as a special mark
Hesychius and the celebrated Passarion, of favour, a copy of the Acts of the council of
governor of a monastery in Jerusalem. Ephesus, A.D. 431. By whom he was first
A new turn was given to thelife of Euthymius accused, whether by Theodoret in his Eran-
by a cure which he effected for Terebon, son of istes, or by his former friend, Eusebius of
Aspebetus, prince of the Saracens, who, hear- Dorylaeum, or by Domnus of Antioch, it
ing of his fame, brought the afflicted boy to his seems difficult to decide (cf. Hefele, ii. 319 ;
gloomy retreat with a large train of followers. Martin, 75-78) but it is clear that to Eusebius
;

The prayers of Euthymius are said to have are due the definite charges first brought
restored health to the patient, and the whole against him at Constantinople in 448.
company believed on the Lord Jesus. Euthy- Flavian, who succeeded Proclus in 447 as
mius ordered a little recess for water to be archbishop, convened a synod in Constanti-
hollowed out in the side of the cave, and bap- nople on Nov. 8, 448, to consider some ques-
tized them on the spot, the father taking the tions between the metropolitan of Sardis and
name of Peter. His brother-in-law Maris two of his suffragan bishops. Eusebius of
joined the community of anchorets, bestowing Dorylaeum was present, and at its conclusion
all his wealth for the enlargement of the build- complained that Eutyches defamed " the holy
ings. The story spread over Palestine and the Fathers and himself, a man who had never
neighbouring countries, and Euthymius was been suspected of heresy," alleging himself
besieged with applications for medical assist- prepared to convict Eutyches of being untrue
ance and prayer. to the orthodox faith. Flavian listened in
Peter, bp. of the Saracens, on his way to astonishment, and suggested that Eusebius
the council at Ephesus, a.d. 431, visited should first privately discuss with Eutyches
Euthymius, who exhorted him to unite with the points in dispute. Eusebius retorted that
Cyril of Alexandria and Acacius of Melitene, he had already done this unsuccessfully ;
he,
and to do in regard to the creed whatever therefore, implored the synod to summon
seemed right to those prelates. When the Eutyches before them, not only to induce him
council of Chalcedon issued its decrees (451), to give up his views, but to prevent infection
two of his disciples, Stephen and John, who spreading further. Two deputies, a priest
352 EUTYCHES, EUTYCHIANISM EUTYCHES, EUTYCHIANISM
and a deacon, were instructed to read to asteries to make inquiries. Meanwhile Mamas
Eutyches the complaint, and to invite him to and Theophilus returned. They reported that
attend the s^'nod, which met again on Nov. 12. they had encountered many obstacles. The
Eusebius asked first for the recital of (a) monks round the door of the monastery had
Cyril's first letter to Nestorius, lb) the appro- affirmed the archimandrite to be ill ; one
bation of that letter by the council of Ephesus, Eleusinius had presented himself as represent-
and (c) Cyril's letter to John of Antioch ; ing Eutyches and it was only on the assur-
;

secondly, that all present should express ance that the letter, of which they were the
acceptance of these documents as true exposi- bearers, contained neither hard nor secret
tions of the Nicene Creed. Flavian and the messages that they at last procured an
bishops present accepted these propositions, audience. To the letter Eutyches replied that
and a resolution to the same effect was sent to nothing but death should make him leave his
the absentees for their approval and signature. monastery, and that the archbishop and the
The synod professed its belief in " Jesus Christ synod might do what they pleased. In his
the only-begotten Son of God, perfect God turn, he wished them to take a letter ; and
and perfect man, of a reasonable soul and body on their refusal announced his intention of
subsisting, begotten before all ages, without sending it to the synod. Eusebius at once
beginning ; of the Father according to the broke out, " Guilty men have always some
Godhead, but in these last days for our sake excuse ready we must bring Eutyches here
;

and for our salvation born of the Virgin Mary, against his will." But at the desire of Flavian,
according to the manhood ; consubstantial two priests (Memnon and Epiphanius) and a
with the Father, as touching His Godhead, and deacon (Germanus) were sent to make another
consubstantial with the mother, as touching effort. They took a letter exhorting Eutyches '

His manhood." " We confess that Jesus Christ, not to compel the synod to put in force
after the Incarnation, was of two natures in canonical censure, and summoning him before
one Hypostasis and in one Person; one Christ, them two days later (Nov. 17). The synod
one Son, one Lord. Whosoever asserts other- met on Nov. 16. During the session, infor-
wise, him we exclude from the clergy and mation was brought to Flavian that certain
the church " (Mansi, vi. 679). At the third monks and deacons, friends of Eutyches, and
session, Nov. 15, the deputies announced that Abraham, archimandrite of a neighbouring
Eutyches refused to appear before the synod, monastery, requested an audience. They
alleging that Eusebius had long been his were at once admitted. Abraham informed
enemy, and had grossly slandered him, for he the archbishop that Eutyches was ill, and had
(Eutyches) was ready to assent to and subscribe deputed him to speak for him. Flavian's
the statements of the holy Fathers at Nicaea reply was paternal and conciliatory. He re-
and Ephesus. Certain expressions used by them gretted the illness of Eutyches, and, on behalf
were, in his opinion, mistakes ; in such cases of those present, expressed their willingness to
he turned to Holy Scripture, as a safer guide wait till he was restored. " Let him remem-
than the Fathers. He worshipped one nature, ber," he continued, " that he is not coming
and that the nature of God incarnate. Read- among strangers, but among men who would
ing from a little book which he fetched, receive him with fatherly and brotherly
Eutyches then, according to the deputies, affection, and many of whom have hitherto
first protested against a statement falsely been his friends. He has pained many, and

ascribed to him viz. that the Logos had must defend himself. Surely if he could leave
brought His body from heaven— and next his retirement when the error of Nestorius
asserted his inability to find in the writings of imperilled the faith, he should do as much
the Fathers their belief that our Lord Jesus when his own orthodoxy is in question. He
Christ subsisted of two Persons united in one has but to acknowledge and anathematize his
Hypostasis ; adding, that even if he did find error, and the past shall be forgiven. As
such a statement, he must decline to accept regards the future, he must give assurance to
it, as not being in Holy Scripture. In his us that he will only teach conformably to the
belief, He Who was born of the Virgin Mary doctrines of the Fathers." The archbishop
was very God and very man, but His body closed with significant words " You (monks)
:

was not of like substance with ours. Eusebius know the zeal of the accuser of Eutyches.
struck in, " This is quite enough to enable us Fire itself seems to him cold in comparison
to take action against Eutyches but let him with his burning zeal for religion. God knows
;

be summoned a second time." Two priests I have besought him to desist ; but, as he
were now sent to tell Eutyches that his replies persisted, what could I do ? Do you suppose
had given great offence ; he must come and that I have any wish to destroy you, and not
explain them, as well as meet the charges rather gather you together ? It is the act of
originally brought against him. They took an enemy to scatter, but the act of a father
with them a note saying that if he still refused to gather."
to appear, it might be necessary to deal with The fifth session opened on Wed. Nov. 17,
him according to canonical law, and that his and as the result of its deliberations, Eutyches
determination not to leave his cell was simply was informed that he would be expected on
an evasion. During their absence, Eusebius Nov. 22, and, if he failed to appear, would be
brought forward a further charge. Eutyches, deprived of his clerical functions and monastic
he asserted, had written and circulated among dignity. A sixth session met on Sat. Nov.
the monks a little book on the faith, to which 20, and agreed that Eutyches might be
he had requested their signatures. The state- accompanied on the Monday following by
ment was evidently an exaggeration, but was four friends. Eusebius said that when Mamas
of sufficient importance for priests and deacons and Theophilus had visited Eutyches, the
to be at once sent to the neighbouring mon- archimandrite used expressions not reported
" :

EUTYCflES, EITTYCHIANISM fiUTVCHES, EUTYCHiANISM 353

to the synod, but which threw great light on ance with the perception of the unconfused
his opinions. At the request of the bishops, union (rJjj' ttjs dcvyxiiTov ivwcrtws ^fvoiav),
Theophilus narrated what had occurred. we confess the Holy Virgin O^oroKot, because
Eutyches, he said, had wished to argue with God the Word was made flesh, and became
them, and in the presence of several of his man and united to Himself by conception the
monks had put these questions " Where, in : temple taken from her." Eusebius exclaimed,
Holy Scripture, is there any mention of two " Certainly Eutyches does not acknowledge
natures ? Which of the Fathers has declared this he has never believed it, but taught the
;
"
that God the Word two natures ?
has very opposite to every one who came to him."
Mamas had replied that theargument from Florentius desired that Eutyches should be
silence was insufficient. " The word 6/xoovaios asked if he assented to these documents or
does not occur in Holy Scripture we owe it ; not. Eutyches was interrogated and when ;

to the definitions of the Fathers. And simi- the archbishop put the plain question " Do :

larly we owe to them the affirmation of the two you confess that Christ is of two natures ? "
natures." Theophilus had then asked if Euty- Eutyches answered, " I have never yet pre-
ches believed that God the Word was " perfect sumed to dispute about the nature of my God ;

(r^Xeios) in Christ," and " Do you believe that that He is consubstantial with us have I never
the man made flesh was also perfect (in Him) ? said. I readily admit that the Holy Virgin is

He answered " Yes " to both questions, where- consubstantial with us, and that our God was
upon Theophilus urged, " H in Christ be perfect born of her flesh." Flavian, Florentius, Basil
God and perfect man, then do these perfect and others, pressed upon him
of Seleucia, :

(natures) form the one Son. Why will you "


you admit that Mary is consubstantial
If
not allow that the one Son consists of two with us, and that Christ took His manhood
natures ? " Eutyches replied " God forbid
: from her, it naturally follows that He, accord-
that I should say that Christ consists of two ing to His manhood, is consubstantial with us."
natures, or dispute about the nature of God. Eutyches answered " I do not say that :

Let the synod depose me, or do what they the body of man has become the body of God ;

please. I will hold fast by the faith which I but in speaking of a human body of God I say
have received." Mamas substantiated the that the Lord became flesh of the Virgin. If
truth of this report, adding that what led to you wish me to add that His body is consub-
the discussion was a remark of Eutyches stantial with ours, I will do so
: but I cannot ;

" God the Word became flesh to restore fallen use the word consubstantial in such a manner
human nature," and the question which he as to deny that He is the Son of God." Fla-
(Mamas) had put " By what nature, then,
: vian's retort was Just " You will then admit :

"
is this human nature taken up and restored ? this from compulsion, and not because it is
Flavian naturally asked why this conversation your belief." Finally, the synod desired
had not been reported before it was a lame
: Eutyches to make a full explanation, and to
but thoroughly Oriental answer to reply pronounce an anathema on opinions opposed
" Because we had been sent, not to question to the documents which had been recited.
Eutyches about his faith, but to summon him Eutyches replied that he would, if the synod
to the synod. We gave you his answer to the desired it, make use of language (viz. consub-
latter point. No one asked us about the stantial with us, and of two natures) which,
former, and therefore we held our peace." in his opinion, was very much open to ques-
The seventh, last, and weightiest session tion "but," he added, "inasmuch as I do
;

met on Mon. Nov. 22. Eutyches at last pre- not find such language either in Holy Scripture
sented himself, accompanied by a multitude or in the writings of the Fathers, I must decline
of soldiers, monks, and others, who refused to to pronounce an anathema on those who do
allow him to enter till assured that he should not accept it, lest in so doing I should be — —
depart as free as he entered. A letter from the anathematizing the Fathers." Florentius
emperor (Theodosius II.) was presented. " I asked " Do you acknowledge two natures in :

" "
wish," it said, for the peace of the church, Christ, and His consubstantiality with us ?
and steadfast adherence to the orthodox " Cyril and Athanasius," answered Eutyches,
doctrinesof theFathers at Nicaea and Ephesus. " speak of two natures before the union, but
And because I know that Florentius the of one nature after the union." " If you do
patrician is a man approved in the faith, I not acknowledge two natures after the union,"
desire that he should be present at the sessions said Florentius, " you will be condemned.
of a synod which has to deal with matters of Whosoever refuses the formula of two '

faith." The synod received the letter with natures and the expression two natures is ' ' '

shouts, " Long live the emperor His faith unorthodox


!
" to which the synod responded;

is great ! Long live our pious, orthodox, high- with the cry, " And to receive this under com-
priest and emperor (tQ apx^epd liaffiXei)." pulsion (as would Eutyches) is not to believe
Florentius was conducted to his seat, the in it. Long live the emperor " The sen- !

accuser (Eusebius) and the accused (Eutyches) tence was pronounced " Eutyches, formerly :

took their places, and the session began by the priest and archimandrite, hath proved himself
recital of all the papers bearing on the point affected by the heresy of Valentinus and
at issue. Cyril's letter to John of Antioch Apollinaris, and hath refused in spite of our —
was again read, in which occurred the follow- admonition to accept the true faith. There-
ing " We confess our Lord Jesus Christ

: fore we, lamenting his perverseness, have
. . .

consubstantial with the Father, according to decreed, through our Lord Jesus Christ, blas-
the Godhead, and consubstantial with us phemed by him, that he be excluded from all
according to the manhood for a union of the priestly functions, from our communion, and
;

two natures was made wherefore we confess from his primacy in his monastery." Ex-
;

one Christ, one Son, one Lord. And in accord- communication was pronounced upon all who
23
354 EUTYCHES, EUTYCHIANISM EUTYCHES, EUTYCHIANISM
should consort with and abet him, and the separation from herself of nations which have
sentence was signed by 32 {? 28) bishops, and never returned to her, and perhaps never will "
23 archimandrites. Eutyches left the council- (Martin). Leo was not present except by
chamber muttering an appeal to Rome. his legates, who brought the famous tome, or
The monks rallied round Eutyches, and doctrinal letter, to Flavian, and letters to the
the influence of the minister Chrysaphius, his emperor, the archimandrites, the council, and
godson, was exerted in his behalf. Eutyches others. In his letter to Theodosius (June 13,
himself wrote to the emperor and to many of 449) Leo expresses his regret that " the foolish
the bishops, and placarded notices about Con- old man " (Eutyches) had not given up
stantinople, protesting against his sentence opinions condemned by the synod of Con-
and justifying his teaching. Of his letters the stantinople, and intimates his wish that the
most important is to pope Leo. In it he ac- archimandrite should be received again if he
cuses Eusebius of acting at Satan's bidding, would keep his promise to the pope, and amend
not in the interests of orthodoxy, but with the what was erroneous in his views. In the
intention of destroying him. He repeats that letter to Pulcheria (same date), the pope con-
he could not accede to the demands of the siders Eutyches to have fallen into his error
synod, acknowledge two natures in Christ, and " through want of knowledge rather than
anathematize all who opposed this doctrine, through wickedness " to the archimandrites
;

because Athanasius, Gregory, Julius, and of Constantinople he states his conviction that
Felix had rejected the expression " two they do not share the views of Eutyches, and
natures," he himself having no wish to add exhorts them to deal tenderly with him should
to the creed of Nicaea and Ephesus, nor to he renounce his error and to the synod he
;

define too particularly the nature of God the quotes the confession of St. Peter, " Thou art
Word. He adds that he had desired the synod the Christ, the Son of the living God"'-
to lay the matter before the pope, promising (Matt. xvi. 16) as embodying belief in the two
to abide by his decision ;but this not having natures, and argues that if Eutyches had
been granted, he, being in great danger, now rightly understood these words, he would
implored the pope to give an unprejudiced not have swerved from the path of truth.
judgment, and to protect him. In most of these Leo refers to the tome as
Flavian, on his part, circulated the decree containing the true teaching of the church.
of excommunication. He charged the monks A synod stigmatized as " a gang of robbers "
to obey it, and communicated it to the em- was not likely to permit the recital of a
peror, the pope, and provincial bishops. His document condemnatory of Eutyches, the
interviews with the emperor were marked by man they were pledged to acquit. It was
great suspicion on the part of the latter ;
presented, but shelved.
and his letter to Leo was forestalled by that For the history of the synod, in its relation
of Eutyches and a second was required before to Eutyches, see Dioscorus. The Christian
the pope was satisfied. Leo eventually gave world was rent in pieces by its proceedings.
Eutyches his answer in the celebrated Epistola Egypt, Thrace, and Palestine ranged them-
Dogmatica ad Flavianum. selves with Dioscorus and the emperor ; SjTia,
Court favour inclined to Eutyches ; and Pontus, Asia, Rome, protested against the
early in 449 the emperor appointed a commis- treatment of Flavian and the acquittal of
sion to examine a charge of falsification of the Eutyches. Dioscorus excommunicated Leo,
acts of the late synod of Constantinople, Leo Dioscorus. Theodosius applauded and
proffered by Eutyches against Flavian. No confirmed the decisions of the synod in a
such falsification was proved, and the com- decree which denounced Flavian, Eusebius,
mission had no choice but to confirm the sen- and others as Nestorians, forbad the elevation
tence pronounced by the synod ; but an of their followers to episcopal rank, deposed
agitation was thereby advanced, which was them if already bishops, and expelled them
productive of the greatest misery. from the country. Leo wrote to the emperor
A council had already been summoned by Theodosius, to the church at Constantinople,
the emperor to meet at Ephesus. Eutyches and to the anti-Eutychian archimandrites.
and Dioscorus, patriarch of Alexandria, had He asked for a general council.
demanded it, and their position had been The wrangle was suddenly silenced by the
supported by Chrysaphius. The imperial sum- death of Theodosius (July 450). Under Mar-
mons was in the names of Theodosius H. and cian orthodoxy triumphed again :
" Euty-
Valentinian UL, and was dated May 30, 449. chianism, as well as Nestorianism, was
It stated the cause of the summons to be the conquered " (Leo). Marcian assented at once
doubts and disputes which had arisen concern- and cordially to the pope's request for a
ing the faith; it invited Dioscorus to present council. Anatolius convened a synod of such
himself with ten metropolitans and ten bishops bishops, archimandrites, priests, and deacons
at Ephesus on Aug. i ; and it extended the as were at Constantinople, and in the presence
invitation to other bishops, Theodoret of Cyrus of the Roman legates subscribed the tome,
(Kars) being exempted unless specially sum- and, together with the whole assembly,
moned by the council. anathematized Eutyches, Nestorius, and their

The synod the " Latrocinium," or " Rob- followers. Leo's wish for a council was not
ber Synod," as posterity was taught to call it now so urgent. The danger had passed away.

by Leo first met on Aug. 8, 449. " Flavian Eutychianism and Nestorianism had been
was presented as an oppressor and Eutyches anathematized ;his own tome had been
as a victim, and terrible was the day on which everywhere accepted of more immediate
;

it opened. The true faith received in the East importance, in his opinion, was the practical
a shock from which it has never completely question, how best and most speedily to
recovered since. The church witnessed the reconcile the penitent and to punish the
EUTYCHES, EUTYCHIANISM EUTYCHES, EUTYCHIANISM 355
obstinate. The war in the West, the invasion At the 4th session (Oct. 17) t8 anti-Euty-
of Gaul by Attila, would prevent the bishops chian priests and archimandrites, headed by
of the West from attending a council in Italy, Faustus, were admitted. They were ques-
where he wished it to be. Nestorianism was tioned about a petition addressed to Marcian
still powerful among the bishops of Syria, and previous to the opening of the council, by
would unquestionably bias the views of many, Carosus and other Eutychians, who styled
should a council be called in the East, as the themselves archimandrites. Faustus replied
emperor desired. He feared that the men that only two of the petitioners (Carosus and
who would unite for the condemnation of Dorotheus) were archimandrites, the rest were
Eutychianism would find means for a triumph men who lived in martyries or were unknown
of Nestorianism over orthodoxy. But, in to them. The imperial commissioners com-
deference to the emperor's convictions, he manded that Carosus and the others should be
consented to send representatives to the future summoned. Twenty came, and then the
council, while he urged that no fresh discus- petition was read. It was an impassioned
sion should be allowed whether Eutyches was appeal to the emperor to prevent an outbreak
heretical or not, or whether Dioscorus had of schism, to summon a council, and mean-
judged rightly or not, but that debate should while forbid the expulsion of any man from
turn upon the best means of reconciling and his church, monastery, or martyry. In a
dealing mercifully with those who had gone second document the Eutychians excused
wrong. For a similar reason he urged the themselves for not having previously attended,
emperor's wife, Pulcheria, to cause the remo- on the ground that the emperor had forbidden
val of Eutyches from the neighbourhood of it. " The emperor," it proceeded, " had
Constantinople, and to place an orthodox assured them that at the council the creed of
abbat at the head of his monastery. Nicaea only should be established, and that
The fourth great council of the church met nothing should be undertaken previous to
at Chalcedon on Oct. 8, 451. For its general this." It urged that the condemnation of
history see Dioscorus. During the first session Dioscorus was inconsistent with the imperial
the secretaries read the documents descriptive promise ;
he and his bishops should therefore
of the introduction of Eutyches at the synod of be again called to the council, and the present
Ephesus (the Latrocinium) and the reading of schism would be removed. If not, they de-
his paper. At words attributingtoEutyches the clared that they would hold no communion
statement, " The third general council (that with men who opposed the creed of the 318
of Ephesus, 431) hath directly forbidden any Fathers at Nicaea. To prove their own ortho-
addition to the Nicene Creed," Eusebius of doxy they appended their signatures to that
Dorylaeum exclaimed, " That is untrue." creed and to the Ephesian canon which con-
"You will find it in four copies," retorted firmed it. Aetius, archdeacon of Constanti-
Dioscorus. Diogenes of Cyzicus urged that nople, reminded these petitioners that church
Eutyches had not repeated the Nicene Creed discipline required monks to accept from the
as it then stood for the second general
;
bishops instructions in matters of faith. In
council (Constantinople, 381) had certainly the name of the council he demanded, " Do
appended (against Apollinaris and Macedo- you assent to their decision or not ? " "I
nius) to the words " He was incarnate," the abide by the creed of Nicaea," answered
words " by the Holy Ghost of the Virgin Carosus ;
" condemn me and send me into
Mary," though he considered this an explan- exile. ... If Eutyches doth not beheve what
ation rather than an addition ; but the the Catholic church believes, let him be
Egyptian bishops present disclaimed (as Cyril anathema." The appeal of Faustus and
had previously done) any such revised version other anti-Eutychian archimandrites to the
of the Nicene confession and greeted the words emperor was now ordered to be read. The
of Diogenes with loud disapproval. Angry Eutychian archimandrite Dorotheus imme-
words were again interchanged when the diately asserted the orthodoxy of Eutyches.
reader continued " I (Eutyches) anathema-
: The commissioners retorted, " Eutyches
tize all who say that the flesh of our Lord teaches that the body of the Redeemer is not
Jesus Christ came down from heaven." of like substance to ours. What say you to
" True," interrupted Eusebius, " but Euty- that ? " Dorotheus avoided a direct answer
ches has never told us whence Christ did take by quoting the language of the Constantino-
His manhood " and Diogenes and Basil of
; politan creed in this form, " Incarnate of the
Seleucia affirmed that Eutyches, though Virgin and made man," and interpreting it in
pressed upon this point at Constantinople, had an anti-Nestorian sense but he declined to
;

refused to speak out. Dioscorus now, and to attest the language used on this point by Leo
his honour, protested " Let Eutyches be not
: in his tome. The commissioners were now on
only punished, but burnt, if he holds heterodox the point of passing judgment, when the
opinions. I only care to preserve the Catholic Eutychians asserted that the emperor had
faith, not that of any individual man " and
;
promised them an opportunity of fair debate
then he turned upon Basil for having said one with their opponents in his presence. It was
thing at Constantinople and another at Ephe- necessary to ascertain the truth of this, and
sus. " I did so," pleaded Basil, " out of fear
the sitting of Oct. 17 ended. On Oct. 20
of the majority. Before a tribunal of magis-the council met again. Alexander, the priest
trates I would have remained firm even to and periodeutes (" visitor," see Suicer, The-
martyrdom but I did not dare oppose (a saur. i. n.), who had been deputed to see the
;

tribunal of) the Fathers (or bishops)." This emperor, informed the council that he and the
plea for pardon was adopted by the others. decurion John had been sent by the emperor
" Yes, we all sinned (at Ephesus) we all to the monks, with a message to the effect that
;

implore forgiveness." had he (the emperor) considered hims- If able


356 EUTYCHES, EUTYCHIANISM EUTYCHES, EUTYCHIANISM
to decide the point in dispute, he would not aSiaip^Tix}^, ii\(i}pi(XT(j}^ fvuipi^dufvov), the dis-
have convened a council. " I now charge tinction of natures being by no means taken
you," continued the emperor, " to attend the away by the union, but rather the property
council and learn from them what you do not of each nature being preserved, and concurring
yet know. For what the holy general council in one person and one hypostasis, not parted
determines, that I follow, that I rest in, and or divided into two persons, but one and the
that I believe." The imperial language was same Son and Only-begotten, God the Word,
greeted with loud acclamations. The Euty- the Lord Jesus Christ, as the prophets from
chians were granted 30 days' consideration, the beginning have declared concerning Him,
after which, should they remain contumacious, and the Lord Jesus Christ Himself has taught
they would be deprived of ecclesiastical rank us, and the creed of the holy Fathers has
and office. From Leo's correspondence (Epp. delivered to us." " Writing, composing,
136, 141, 142) it would seem that Carosus and devising, or teaching any other creed " was
Dorotheus persisted in their views and were declared unlawful, with penalties " bishops :

ejected by Marcian from their monastery. and clergy were to be deposed, monks and
On Oct. 22, in the 5th session, the memorable laymen anathematized."
" Definition of faith agreed upon at the council On Oct. 25 Marcian, accompanied by Pul-
of Chalcedon " was recited and received with cheria and the court, opened and closed the
the unanimous cry, " This is the faith of the sixth session. In his address he explained
Fathers this is the faith of the Apostles. that he appeared in person, as Constantine
;

We all assent to it. We all think thus." It had done before him, not to overawe and co-
was signed by the metropolitan and by the erce any, but to strengthen and confirm the
imperial commissioners. After declaring faith his efforts and prayers were alike
:

" the sufficiency of the wise and saving directed to one end, that all might be one in
creed " of Nicaea and Constantinople, inas- true doctrine, hold the same religion, and
much as that creed taught " completely the honour the true Catholic faith. The arch-
perfect doctrine concerning the Father, the deacon Aetius recited in his presence the
Son, and the Holy Spirit, and fully explained confession of faith approved at the previous
the Incarnation of the Lord to those who session, and when the emperor asked if it
received it faithfully," it goes on to admit that expressed the opinion of all, shouts arose from
some " dare to corrupt the mystery of the all sides, " This is the belief of us all are ! We
Lord's Incarnation, others (i.e. the Euty- unanimous, and have signed it unanimously !

chians) bring in a confusion and mixture We are all orthodox This is the belief of the
!

((Ti'YX'"''"' '^^'- Kpaaiv), and absurdly imagine Fathers this is the belief of the Apostles
; ;

the nature of the flesh and of the Godhead to this is the belief of the orthodox this belief ;

be one, and teach the monstrous doctrine that hath saved the world Long live Marcian, !

the Divine nature of the Only-begotten was a the new Constantine, the new Paul, the new
commixture capable of suffering Therefore David
. . . Long live Pulcheria, the new
!

"
the present holy, great, and oecumenical Helena !

council . has added for the confirmation of


. . Imperial edicts speedily followed the close
the orthodox doctrines, the letter of Leo of the council (Nov. i). One, dated Mar. 13,
written to Flavian for the removal of the evil 452, was especially directed against the Euty-
opinions {KaKovoia) of Eutyches. For it is chians. They had persisted in disseminating
" foolishness " in spite of the council and
directed against those who attempt to rend their
the mystery of the Incarnation into a duad of the emperor. Marcian warned them that
Sons ; it repels from the sacred congregation their contumacy would be sharply punished ;

those who dare to say that the Divinity of the and on July 28, Eutychians and Apollinarians
Only-begotten is capable of suffering it is were deprived of their priests and forbidden
;

opposed to those who imagine a mixture or to hold meetings or live together in monas-
confusion of the two natures of Christ it teries they were to be considered incapable
; ;

drives away those who fancy that the form of of inheriting property under a will or devising
a servant which was taken by Him of us is property to their co-sympathizers and were ;

of an heavenly or any other substance and to be reckoned unfit for military service.
;

it condemns those who speak of two natures Eutychian priests who had seceded from their
of the Lord before the union, and feign one post in the church and the monks from Euty-
after the union. . . . We
then," was the con- ches's own monastery were banished from
clusion, " following the holy Fathers, all with Roman territory. Their writings were to be
one consent teach men to confess one and the burnt, and the composer and circulator of such
same Son, one Lord Jesus Christ the same works was to be punished with confiscation of
;

perfect in Godhead and also perfect in man- goods and with exile. Dioscorus and Eutyches
hood truly God and truly man, of a reason- were exiled, but the latter died probably be-
:

able soul and body consubstantial with the fore the sentence was carried into effect.
;

Father according to the Godhead, and con- " With none of those who have been the
substantial with us according to the manhood authors of heresies among Christians was blas-
;

in all things like unto us without sin begotten phemy the first intention
; nor did they fall ;

before all ages of the Father according to the from the truth in a desire to dishonour the
Godhead, and in these latter days, for us and Deity, but rather from an idea which each
for our salvation, born of Mary, the Virgin entertained, that he should improve upon his
Mother of God, according to the Manhood predecessors by upholding such and such
;

one and the same Christ, Son, Lord, Only- doctrines." These words of the church his-
begotten, to be acknowledged in two natures, torian Evagrius (i. 11) follow his account of
inconfusedly, unchangeably, indivisibly, in- the second [i.e. the Robber) synod of Ephesus,
separably [iv bvo <p{/(Te<jt.v aavyx^'^'^^) drpiirTus. which restored Eutyches. They express the
EUTYCHIANUS EUTYCHIUS 367
belief of a judicially-trained mind within little Eutychius to the Acts of this synod, which sat
more than loo years after the events in ques- from May 5 to June 2, 553, is a summary of
tion, and are in substance reproduced by the decrees against the Three Chapters.
"judicious" Hooker {Eccl. Pol. v. c. 52). Eutychius came into violent collision with
Cyril " had given instance in the body and Justinian in 564, when the emperor adopted
soul of man no farther than only to enforce the tenets of the Aphthartodocetae. Euty-
by example against Nestorius, that a visible chius, in a long address, demonstrated the
and invisible, a mortal and an immortal incompatibihty of that theory with Scripture ;

substance, may united make one person." but Justinian insisted on his subscribing to
Eutyches and his followers took those words it, and finding him uncompromising, ordered
of Cyril " as though it had been his drift to his arrest. On Jan. 22, 565, Eutychius
teach, that even as in us the body and the was at the holy table celebrating the feast-day
soul, so in Christ God and man make but one of St. Timotheus in the church adjoining the
nature. . . He became unsound (in belief) by Hormisdas palace (cf. du Cange, Cpolis. Chr.
.

denying the difference which still continueth lib. ii. p. 96, lib. iv. p. 93, ed. 1729), when
between the one and the other nature." It soldiers broke into the patriarchal residence,
was "real, though erring reverence" which entered the church, and carried the patriarch
led him, in the first instance, to broach his away, first to a monastery called Choracudis, and
opinions. His " narrow mind, stiffened by the next day to that of St. OsiasnearChalcedon.
seclusion, and bewildered by harassing excite- The 8th day after this outrage Justinian called
ment " (Bright) was in no state in the day of an assembly of princes and prelates, to which
his trial before the synod of Constantinople he summoned Eutychius. The charges against
to perceive to what his teaching logically him were trifling and absurd that he used oint-
:

conducted, nor to accept the qualifications or ments, ate delicate meats, and prayed long.
paraphrases kindly offered. He passed away, Cited thrice, Eutychius replied that he would
but Eutychianism exists still (Pusey, Councils only come if he were to be judged canonically,
of the Church, p. 25). It never has and never in his own dignity, and in command of his
will yield to edicts like those of Marcian. The clergy. Condemned by default, he was sent
right faith has been defined by the great to an island in the Propontis named Principus,
council which opposed both it and Nestorian- and afterwards to his old monastery at
ism. " We must keep warily a middle course, Amasea, where he spent 12 years and
5
shunning both that distraction of Persons, months. On the death of Joannes Scho-
wherein Nestorius went away, and also this lasticus, whom Justinian had put in the pat-
latter confusion of natures, which deceived riarchal chair, the people of Constantinople
Eutyches " (Hooker). [monophvsitism.] loudly demanded the return of Eutychius.
Consult Mansi, Sacr. Cone. Collectio, vi. vii.; Justin II. had succeeded Justinian, and had
Tillem. Memoires, etc. xv. ; Bright, History of associated with himself the young Tiberius.
the Church (313-451); and other works men- The emperors immediately sent an honourable
tioned above. fj.M.F.] deputation to Amasea to bring back Euty-
Eutyohianus (3). bp. of Rome from Jan. chius, who returned with great joy to Con-
275 to Dec. 283, during a period of 8 years, stantinople in Oct. 577. An immense con-
II months and 3 days, and buried in the course met him, shouting aloud, " Blessed is
cemetery of Callistus. The truth of the record he that cometh in the name of the Lord," and
in the Liberian Catalogue has been confirmed " Glory to God in the highest, on earth peace."
by the discovery by De Rossi (Rom. Sot. ii. In questionable imitation of our Lord he
70), in the papal crypt of the cemetery, of entered on an ass's colt, over garments spread
fragments of a slab inscribed EYTYXIANOC on the ground, the crowd carrying palms,
E n C (Eutychianus episcopus). Ten decreta dancing, and singing. The whole city was
I

appear as his in the collections of Gratian, illuminated, public banquets were held, new
Ivo, and others. —
[j.b v.] buildings inaugurated. Next day he was met
Eutyohius (18), St., patriarch of Constan- by the two emperors with conspicuous honour
tinople. His biography, composed by his at the church of the Virgin in Blachernae. He
chaplain Eustathius, has been preserved entire. then proceeded to the great church, which
Eutychius was born at Theium in Phrygia was filled from end to end, mounted the
c. 512. His father Alexander was a general pulpit, and blessed the multitude. He was
under Belisarius. Eutychius took the monastic six hours distributing the communion, as all
habit at Amasea at the age of 30, c. 542. wished to receive from his own hands.
As an archimandrite at Constantinople he Towards the end of his life Eutychius main-
stood high in favour with the patriarch Men- tained that after the resurrection the body
nas, at whose death in 552 he was nominated will be more subtle than air, and no longer
by Justinian to the vacant chair. palpable. Gregory the Great, then residing
At the beginning of 553 Eutychius wrote to at Constantinople as delegate of the Roman
pope Vigilius, making his profession of the church, felt himself bound to oppose this
Catholic faith, declaring his acceptance of the opinion. The emperor Tiberius talked to the
four councils and the letters of St. Leo, and disputants separately, and tried to reconcile
requesting Vigihus to preside over the council them but the breach was persistent. Euty-
;

that was to be held on the question of the chius breathed his last quietly on Sunday
Three Chapters. Vigilius refused, and Euty- after Easter Day, Apr. 5, 582, aged 70 years.
chius shared the first place in the assembly Some of his friends told Gregory that, a few
with the patriarchs Apollinarius of Alexandria minutes before his end, he touched the skin
and Domninus of Antioch. At the second of his hand, saying, " I confess that in this
session the pope excused himself again, on the flesh we shall rise again" (Paul. Diac. Vit.
ground of ill-health. The subscription of Greg. Mag. lib. i. capp. 9, 27-30; Vit. Greg.
358 EUZOIUS EVAGRIUS
ex ejus Script, lib. i. cap. 5, §§ 6-8 ; Greg. Theod. iv. 21, 22). Euzoius's death is placed
Mag. Moral, xiv. §§ 72-74). by Socrates in 376 at Constantinople {H. E.
The chronology of his life here followed is iv. 35). Le Quien, Or. Chr. ii. 713 Baron. ;

that fixed by Henschen in his introductory Ann. ad ann. 325, Ixxix. 335, xlix. [e.v.] ;

argument to the Life by Eustathius (Boll. Acta EvagrlUS (5), known as Evagrius of Antioch,
SS. 6 Ap. i. 550). His literary remains are was consecrated bishop over one of the parties
his letter to pope Vigilius already mentioned, in Antioch in 388 or 389, and must have lived
printed in Greek and Latin by Mansi (ix. 186), until at least 392. Socr. H. E. v. 15 Soz. ;

and by Migne {Pair. Lat. Ixix. 63 Pair. Gk. H. E. vii. 15 ; Theod. H. E. v. 23 Hieron. ; ;

Ixxxvi. 2401), and some fragments of a Dis- de Vir. III. cap. 25 Ambrose, Ep. Ivi. ;

course on Easter and the Holy Eucharist (Migne, Evagrius belonged to the Eustathian divi-
Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi. 2391). In this treatise sion of the orthodox church at Antioch, of
Eutychius argues against the Quartodeci- which he became a presbyter. After the
mans, against the Hydroparastatae who used schism at Antioch caused by Lucifer's con-
water instead of wine at communion (he says secration of Paulinus, Evagrius left Antioch,
that the only apostolic tradition is the mixture and accompanied Eusebius of Vercelli to
of both), against certain schismatic Arme- Italy in 363 or 364. Here he zealously
nians who used only wine, and against some co-operated with Eusebius in restoring peace
Greeks and Armenians who adored the to the churches distracted by the results of
elements as soon as they were offered and the council of Ariminum, and re-establishing
before consecration. The lost work of Euty- orthodoxy on the terms laid down by the
chius was a discourse on the manner of exist- synod of Alexandria in 362. He also afforded-
ence of reasonable natures in space, a sort of pope Damasus important aid against Ursicius
physical theory of the future life. Patr. Gk. and his faction, a.d. 367. At Milan he re-
Ixxxix. §§ 2270-2389 BoUand. AA. SS. Ap. solutely withstood the Arian bp. Auxentius.
;

i. 548 ib. App. p. lix. in Greek


; Surius, de After nine or ten years he returned to the
;

Prob. Hist. SS. Apr. p. 82 Evagr. iv. 37 ;


East, with Jerome, with the view of healing
;

Theoph. Chronogr. 193, 201, 202, 203, 210, the schism that still divided the church of
211, 212, 213 ; Cave, i. 527. [w.m.s.] Antioch. He called at Caesarea to visit Basil
EuzoiUS (1), Arian bp. of Antioch, the com- in the autumn of 373, and found him suffering
panion and intimate friend of Arius from an from ague. He was commissioned by the
early age. He was one of 11 presbyters and Western bishops to return to Basil the letters
deacons of that church, deposed together with he had sent them, probably relating to the
Arius by Alexander bp. of Alexandria, c. 320 Meletian schism, as unsatisfactory, and to
(Socr. H. E. i. 6 Soz. H. E. i. 15
; Theod. convey terms dictated by them, which he was
;

H. E. i. 4, ii. 311 Athan. de Syn. p. 907). to embody in a fresh letter to be sent into
;

He was again condemned and banished, with the West by some duly authorized commis-
Arius, by the council of Nicaea, a.d. 325. sioners. Only thus would the Western pre-
When Arius was recalled from banishment, lates feel warranted in interfering in the
and summoned to the emperor's side in 330, Eastern church, and making a personal visit
he was accompanied by Euzoius, by this time (Basil, Ep. 138 [8]). On his return to Antioch,
a priest. Both regained the emperor's con- Evagrius wrote in harsh terms to Basil,
fidence by an evasive declaration of their faith accusing him of a love of controversy and of
and a professed acceptance of the creed of being unduly swayed by personal partialities.
Nicaea (Socr. H. E. i. 25, 26 Soz. H. E. ii. ; If he really desired peace, let him come himself
27). He accompanied Arius to Jerusalem at to Antioch and endeavour to re-unite the
the great gathering of Eusebian bishops for Catholics, or at least write to them and use
the dedication of the church of the Anastasis, his influence with Meletius to put an end to
Sept. 13, 335, and with him was received into the dissensions. Basil's reply is a model of
communion by the council then held (Soz. I.e. ;
courteous sarcasm. If Evagrius was so great
Athan. de Synod, p. 8gi). In 361 Constantius, a lover of peace, why had he not fulfilled his
having banished Meletius, bp. of Antioch, promise of communicating with Dorotheus,
summoned Euzoius from Alexandria, and com- the head of the Meletian party ? It would
manded the bishops of the province to conse- be far better for Evagrius to depute some one
crate him. A few months later Constantius, from Antioch, who would know the parties to
being seized with a fatal fever, summoned the be approached and the form the letters should
newly appointed bishop, Euzoius, to his bedside take {rb. 156 [342]). On the death of Paulinus,
on Nov. 3, 361, and received from him the A.D. 388, Evagrius manifested the hollowness
sacrament of baptism. Whether this was at of his professed desire for peace by becoming
Antioch or Mopsucrene in Cilicia is uncertain himself the instrument of prolonging the
(Athan. ib. 907 Philost. H. E. vi. 5).
; On the schism. He was ordained by the dying bp.
accession of Valens, Euzoius was urged by Paulinus, in his sick-chamber, without the
Eudoxius to convene a synod of bishops at presence or consent of any assisting bishops,
Antioch to takeoff Aetius's sentence, and this in direct violation of the canons. Flavian had
he ultimately did, c. 364 {ib. vii. 5). On the been consecrated by the other party on the
death of Athanasius in 373, Euzoius was, at death of Meletius, a.d. 381. Thus the hope of
his own petition, dispatched by Valens, with healing the schism was again frustrated (Socr.
Magnus the imperial treasurer and troops, to H. E. V. 15 Theod. H. E. v. 23). A council
;

instal the imperial nominee, the Arian Lucius was summoned at Capua, a.d. 390, to deter-
of Samosata, instead of Peter the duly elected mine whether Flavian or Evagrius was lawful
and enthroned bishop. This commission was bp. of Antioch, but found the question too
carried out with shameless brutality and per- knotty, and relegated the decision to Theo-
secution of the orthodox (Socr. H. E. iv. 21 ;
philus of Alexandria and the Egyptian bishops.
EVAGRIUS PONTICUS EVAGRIUS 359

The death of Evagrius deprived Flavian of his writings (ad Ctesiph.), especially of his book
rival.This was not before 392, in which year Trept airadda^, when combating the tenet
Jerome speaks of him as still alive {de Vir. III. ascribed to the Origenists that a man could
c. 125). Jerome praises treatises on various raise himself to a superiority to temptation (i.e.
subjects which he heard Evagrius read while as Jerome says, " becoming either a stone or
still a presbyter, but which he had not yet god ") and live without sin. He also charges
published. He translated into Latin the Life him with being a precursor of Pelagius (in
of St. Anthony by St. Athanasius {Migne, Pair. Pelag. p. 260), and including in his book de
Gk. xxvi. 835-976). Its genuineness has been Monachis many who never were monks at all,
much disputed, but the balance of critical judg- and also Origenists who had been condemned
ment seems in its favour. [j.c.g. and e.v.1 by their bishops. The existing remains of
Evagrius (12) Pontious, anchoret and his writings are printed by Galland, Bibl.
writer, born at Ibora in Pontus Galaticus, Pair. vii. 551-581, and Migne, Pair. vol. 86.
according to Tillemont, in 345. He was Socrates, Gennadius, Palladius, and Suidas,
ordained reader by Basil, and deacon by Gre- sub voc. " Macarius," mention as by him :

gorv Nvssen, who took him to the council (i) Monachus, on " active virtue," in 100
of Constantinople, a.d. 381, teite his pupil chapters. (2) Gnosticus. (3) Antirrhetictis, a
Palladius (Hist. Lausiac. c. 86, p. loio). collection of passages of Scripture against the
Gregory Nyssen thought so highly of Evagrius eight divisions of evil thoughts. (4)A Century
as a theologian and dialectician that he left of Prayers. (5) 600 Gnostic Problems. (6) A
him behind in Constantinople to aid the newly Letter to Melania. (7) Abook, nepl diradeias.
appointed bishop, Nectarius (who, before his (8) 100 Sentences for the Use of Anchorets living
consecration, was a layman destitute of theo- simply. (9) Short Sentences. (10) 1,Tixr]po;
logical training) in dealing with heretics. in two books, one addressed to monks, and the
The imperial city proved a dangerous home other to a virgin dedicated to God. (11) Liber
for the young deacon. The wife of an ex- de rerum monachalium rationibus. (12) Scho-
prefect conceived a guilty passion for him, lion de tetragrammato Dei nomine. Oudin, i.
which he returned. The husband's jealousy 883 Tillem. Mem. eccl. x. pp. 368 ff.
; ;Fabr.
was awakened, and Evagrius only escaped Bibl. Graec. ix. 284, ed. Harles Dupin, Hist.
;

assassination by a timely flight, being warned Eccl. in. I Cave, Hist. Lit. i. 275
;
cf.
;

of his peril by a dream (Soz. H. E. vi. 30). O. Zickler, Evagrius Ponlicus (Munich, 1893) ;

Jerusalem was the place of his retreat. Here Draseke, " Zu Evag.-Pont." in Zeitschrift fiir
J.
he was hospitably received by Melania the wissensch Theol. 1894, xxxvii. 125 ff. [e.v.]
elder, by whom he was nursed during a severe Evagrius (17), an ecclesiastical historian,
attack of fever, and who, perceiving the who wrote six books, embracing a period of
weakness of his disposition, led him to embrace 163 years, from the council of Ephesus a.d.
an ascetic life as the only safeguard against 431 to the i2th year of the emperor Mauricius
the temptations of the flesh. Evagrius went Tiberius, a.d. 594. He was born at Epiphania
to Egypt, where, after two years spent in in Coelesyria a.d. 536 or 537, but accompa-
great austerities in the Nitrian desert, he nied his parents to Apamea for his education,
plunged still deeper into the solitude, and and from Apamea seems to have gone to
practised severer mortifications in the cells of Antioch, the capital of Syria, and entered the
Scetis. Here the two Macarii were his in- profession of the law. He received the sur-
structors and models in the ascetic life. After name of Scholasticus, a term then applied to
enduring many terrible temptations, recorded lawyers (Du Cange, Glossarium, s.v.), gained
by Palladius, and having obtained mastery great favour with Gregory bp. of Antioch, and
over his bodily passions, he became qualified was chosen by him to assist in his judgments.
to instruct others in asceticism. Palladius He seems to have won general esteem and
became his companion and disciple in 391. goodwill, for on his second marriage the city
Among his other disciples were Rufinus, and was filled with rejoicing, and great honours
Heraclides of Cyprus, afterwards bp. of were paid him by the citizens. He accom-
Ephesus {ib. viii. 6). Palladius gives several panied Gregory to Constantinople, and suc-
anecdotes illustrative of the height of ascetic cessfully advocated his cause when he was
virtue attained by Evagrius and his fellow- summoned to answer there for heinous crimes.
hermits. On one occasion he threw into the He also wrote for him a book containing
fire a packet of letters from his parents and " reports, epistles, decrees, orations, disputa-
other near friends lest their perusal should tions, with sundry other matters," which led
re-entangle him in worldly thoughts (Cassian, to his appointment as quaestor by Tiberius
V. 32 ; Tillem. x. 376). Theophilus, the Constantinus and by Mauricius Tiberius as
metropolitan of Alexandria, desired to make master of the rolls, " where the lieutenants
him a bishop, and Evagrius fled to resist his and magistrates with their monuments are
importunities (Socr. H. E. iv. 23). Evagrius registered " (Evagr. vi. 23). This is his own
remained in the cells of Scetis until he died, account of his promotion.
worn out with austerities, in the 17th year of His death must have occurred after 594, in
his recluse life, a.d. 398, at the age of 54, which year he wrote his history at the age of
" signis et prodigiis pollens " (Gennad. Illust. 58 (iv. 28). His other works have perished.
Vir. c. xi.). He was a zealous champion of The history was intended as a continuation of
the doctrines of Origen, for which he fell under those of Eusebius, Socrates, Sozomen, and
the lash of Jerome, whose enmity had also Theodoret. He sought all sources of informa-
been aroused by his having been the instructor tion at his command —
the writings of Eusta-
of Rufinus during his sojourn in Egypt and thius the Syrian, Zosimus, Priscus, Joannes
having enjoyed the patronage of Melania. Rhetor, Procopius of Caesarea, Agathus, and
Jerome speaks in contemptuous terms of his —
other good authors and resolved to bring
360 EVARISTUS EZNIK
their scattered information together " that 1
authority on the order and dates of the early
the famous deeds which slumbered in the dust era of Rome is Bp. Lightfoot's Apostolical
of forgetfulness might be revived that they
; Fathers, part i. [j.b —
v.]
might be stirred with his pen, and presented EvodiUS (t), according to early tradition,
for immortal memory" (Pref. to his Hist.). first bp. of Antioch (Eus. Chron. ann. Abr.
Despite his unnecessarily inflated style, he 2058 ; H. E. iii. 22). His episcopate has
largely attained his end. He is a warm, often indirectly the older testimony of Origan, who
an enthusiastic writer, orthodox in his speaks of Ignatius as the second bishop after
sentiments, and eager in his denunciations Peter (in Luc. Horn. 6, vol. iii. p. 938 see also
;

of prevailing heresies- Jortin indeed has Eus. Quaest. ad Steph. ap Mai, Scr. Vet. i. p. 2).
condemned him as "in points of theological This tradition has all the appearance of being
controversy an injudicious prejudiced zealot " historical. Ignatius early acquired such
{Remarks on Eccl. Hist. ii. p. 120) ; but celebrity that it is not likely the name of an
Evagrius was a lawyer, not a theologian, and undistinguished person would have been
we must look to him for the popular rather placed before his, if the facts did not require
than the learned estimate of the theological this arrangement. The language used about
controversies of his time. His credulous episcopacy in the Ignatian epistles agrees with
enthusiasm led him to accept too easily the the conclusion that Ignatius was not the first
legends of the saints, but in other respects he at Antioch to hold the office. As time went
shews many of the best qualities of an historian. on, the fitness of things seemed to dememd
Not a few original documents, decrees of that Ignatius should not be separated from
councils, supplications to emperors, letters of the Apostles. Athanasius [Ep. de Synodis, i.
emperors and bishops, etc., are preserved in 607) speaks of Ignatius as coming after the
his pages, forming most important authorities Apostles without mention of any one inter-
for the events to which they relate. Goss (in vening Chrysostom makes him contemporary
;

Herzog) especially praises his defence of Con- with the Apostles {Horn, in Ignat. vol. ii. p.
stantine against the slanders of Zosimus. In 593) ; the Apostolic Constitutions (vii. 46)
his general arrangement he follows the reigns have recourse to the expedient adopted in the
of the emperors of the East from Theodosius parallel case of Clement of Rome, the hypo-
the Younger to Maurice but the arrangement
;
thesis of a double ordination, Evodius being
of details is faulty. There is often great spirit said to have been ordained by Peter, Ignatius
in the narrative, an excellent specimen of by Paul. Theodoret {Dial. I. Lmmutab. iv.
which is his account of the council of Chalce- 82, Migne) and others represent Ignatius as
don (ii. 18). The work is chiefly valuable in ordained by Peter. The authorities are given
relation to the Nestorian and Eutychian at length by Zahn {Patres Apostol. ii. 327).
heresies, and the councils of Ephesus and There is reason to believe that the earliest
Chalcedon. The first ed. of the History is tradition did not include an ordination even
that of Valesius, with notes (Paris, 1673) re- of Evodius by Peter ; for the chronicle of
printed at Camb. in Hist. Eccl. Scriptores cum Eusebius places the departure of Peter from
notis Valesii et Reading, and repub. by the Antioch three years, or, according to St.
Clar. Press. The latest and best ed. is by Bidez Jerome's version, two years before the ordi-
and Parmentier (Lend. 1849) in Byzantine nation of Evodius. The chronology of the
Texts edited by J. B. Bury. See also Krum- early bishops of Antioch has been investigated
bacher's Gesch. der Byz. Lit. 2nd ed. p. 246. by Harnack {Die Zeit des Ignatius). He in-
There is a fair Eng. trans, by Meredith fers that the earliest list must have contained
Hanmer (Lond. 1619) along with a trans, of only names of bishops of Antioch without any
Eusebius and Socrates, and more recent ones note of lengths of episcopates, but still that
pub. by Bagster in 1847 and in Bohn's Lib. Eusebius must have had the work of some
(Bell). [W.M.] preceding chronologer to guide him. We may
EvaristUS (called Aristus in the Liberian well believe, as Harnack suggests, that Euse-
Catalogue), bp. of Rome at the beginning of bius got his chronology of early bishops of
the 2nd cent. With respect to the exact date Antioch from Africanus, to whom he acknow-
and duration of his episcopate, as well as the ledges his obligation, and whose chronicle has
names and order of succession of his prede- generally been believed to be the basis of that
cessors [Linus; Cletus; Clement], ancient of Eusebius. If the belief had been enter-
accounts are greatly at variance. Eusebius tained at the beginning of the 3rd cent, that
{H. E. iii. 34, iv. i) gives Clemens as his Evodius had been ordained by Peter, it is
immediate predecessor, the third year of incredible that Africanus would have assigned
Trajan (loi) as the date of his accession, and a date which absolutely excludes an ordina-
9 years as the duration of his episcopate but; tion by Peter. The date assigned by the
in his Chronicle he makes the latter 7 years chronicle of Eusebius to the accession of
(Chron. iv. i). Irenaeus, an older authority, Evodius appears to have no historic value,
who probably got his information when at and thus, while we accept the episcopate of
Rome in the time of Eleutherus towards the Evodius as an historic fact, we have no data
end of the cent., also makes Clemens his for fixing his accession, but may safely place
predecessor, but gives no dates [adv. Haeres. it considerably later than a.d. 42. [g.s.]
iii. 3, 3). The Liberian (a.d 354) and sub- Eznik {Eznig, Esnig), an Armenian doctor
sequent Roman Catalogues, as well as of the church in the 5th cent. His native
Augustin and Optatus, represent him as place was Koghb or Kolp (whence he was
succeeding Anacletus, and the former author- called the Kolpensian), and he was a disciple
ities give A.D. 96 as the commencement of his of the patriarch Sahak (Isaac) and Mjesrop,
episcopate, and between 13 and 14 years as the praecepior Armeniae. Besides his mother
its duration. The best and probably final tongue he understood Persian, Greek, and
FABIANUS FABIOLA 361

Syriac. During long journeys through Syria, calendar designates all the first 30 bishops of
Mesopotamia, and Greece he added to his Rome except two as saints and martyrs,
theological learning, becoming thoroughly Fabianus is the first, except Telesphorus and
acquainted with ecclesiastical literature. Pontianus, whose martyrdom rests on any
Later he was made a bishop, and as such took good authority (cf. also Eus. H. E. vi. 39 ;

part in the synod of Artashast, a.d. 450, Hieron. de III. Vir. c. 54 Cypr. Epp. 39,
;

which repelled the demands of the Persian 30). Fabianus was among the earliest victims
viceroy, Mihr-Nersh, that the Armenians of the Decian persecution. Fragments of a
should adopt Zoroastrianism, in an epistle slab bearing the inscription <^AblANOC-^
marked with dignity, courage, and faith. E^I + ^/P (Fabianus episcopus martyr), to-
He died an aged man, as bp. of Bagrewand gether with others inscribed with the names
(Pakrewand) in the province of Airerat (cf. of Anteros, Lucius, and Eutychianus, Roman
Neumann, Geschichte der Armenischen Lite- bishops of the same period, have been found in
ratur, pp. 42 seq.). His main work is Tke what is called the papal crypt of the cemetery
Destruction of False Doctrines, still preserved of Callixtus, thus attesting the accounts given
in the Armenian original (pub. by the Mechit- of the place of his burial {Roma Sotterranea,
arists of St. Lazarus in the collection of by Northcote and Brownlow).
Armenian classics, Venice, 1826). There is a Fabianus is specially named by Eusebius
good German trans, by J. M. Schmid (Leipz. (H. E. vi. 36) as one among many bishops to
1900), Biblioth. der alten armen. Lit. i. whom Origen wrote in defence of his own

The whole is divided into 4 books the ist orthodoxy. Cyprian mentions him (Ep. 59)
combats the Gentile doctrine of the eternity as having, with Donatus bp. of Carthage,
of matter, the 2nd the Zoroastrian religion, written a letter severely censoring one Pri-
the 3rd Greek philosophy, the 4th the Gnostic vatus, an heretical bp. of Lambaesa in
sect of the Marcionites. The immediate Numidia, who had been condemned by a synod
occasion of the work was the conflict between of go bishops at Lambaesa for " many and
Armenian Christianity and Parsism. The 4th grievous faults." Nothing more is known
book is of value for the history of heresy. about Fabianus with certainty. Great doubt
The representation given of the Marcionite restson the story (accepted by Andreas du
doctrine of Principias, and the various myths Chesne, in Vit. Pontif., and in the main by
concerning the origin of the human race, its the Bollandists) of his having been the founder
corruption by matter, the mission of Christ, of the seven Gallic churches of Toulouse, Aries,
His crucifixion, descent into hell, and victory Tours, Paris, Narbonne, Clermont, Limoges ;

over the Demiurge, contain much peculiar and to which he is said to have sent respectively
characteristic, but much also belonging to Saturninus, Trophimus, Gratianus, Dionysius,
the later developments, not the original forms, Paulus, Astremonius, and Martialis as mis-
of Marcionitism. [r.a.l.] sionary bishops. The story is absent from
early records, and is disputable also on other
grounds. Still more improbable is the story,
accepted by the Bollandists and Baronius, and
resting mainly on the authority of the Acts of
St. Pontius, that the emperor Philip and his
Fabianus (1) (called by the Greeks and in son became Christians, and were baptized by
the Liberian Catalogue Fabiiis, by Eutychius Fabianus. [Philippus (5).] Three spurious
and in the Alexandrian Chronicle Flavianus), decretals are attributed to Fabianus. There
bp. of Rome from early in Feb. 236 to Jan. 20, are also ten decreta assigned to him by Gratian
250, and a martyr. Eusebius relates that, and others, on matters of discipline, [j.b v.] —
the brethren being assembled in the church to Fabiola (1), a noble Roman lady, a friend
choose a successor to Anteros, Fabianus, a of St. Jerome, who wrote for her two disser-
layman lately come from the country, being tations (Ep. Ixiv. and Ixxviii. ed. Vail.) on the
indicated as the chosen of Heaven by a dove dress of the high priest, and on the stations of
settling on his head, the people acclaimed him the Israelites in the desert and also a memoir
;

as worthy and placed him on the episcopal of her in his touching letter to Oceanus (Ep.
throne (//. £. vi.29). That the choice proved a Ixxvii. ed. Vail.) in the year of her death, 399.
good one is witnessed by Cyprian, who rejoices Thierry (St. Jerome, ii. 11) has worked up the
that " his honourable consummation had intimations about her into an interesting and
corresponded to the integrity of his adminis- dramatic story. She was descended from
tration " (Ep. 39, cf. 30). Julius Maximus and extremely wealthy a ;

In the Liberian Catalogue (a.d. 354) he is woman of a lively and passionate nature,
said to have divided the regions of the city married to a man whose vices compelled her
among the deacons, and to have been mar- to divorce him. She then accepted a second
tyred Jan. 20, 250. In the Felician Catalogue husband, the first being still alive. It is prob-
(a.d. 530) and in later editions of the Liber able that this step separated her from Paula
Pontificalis it is added that he made also and the other friends of Jerome, and from
seven subdeacons to superintend the seven church communion, and may account for the
notaries appointed to record faithfully the fact that we hear nothing of her during
acts of the martyrs ; also that he caused to Jerome's stay at Rome. After the death of
be brought to Rome by sea the body of Pon- her second husband she voluntarily went
tianus (the predecessor of his predecessor through a public penance. Having publicly
Anteros), mart>Ted in Sardinia, and buried it renewed her communion with the church, she
in the cemetery of Callixtus on the Appian sold all her possessions, and determined to
Way in which cemetery he too was buried.
; administer the vast sums thus acquired for the
It is remarkable that, though the Roman good of the poor. She supported monasteries

362 FAUSTUS FAUSTUS


in various parts of Italy and the adjacent an extempore preacher.
illustrious He be-
islands, and joined Pammachius in the insti- came a presbyter, and c. 432 or 433 succeeded
tution of a hospital {vocroKOfieToi'), where she Maximus as abbat of Lerins. His tenure
gathered in the sick and outcasts, and tended was marked by a dispute with his diocesan
them with her own hands. In 305 she Theodore, bp. of Frejus, concerning their
suddenly appeared at Bethlehem, making the respective rights. The third council of Aries
journey with her kinsman Oceanus. Several was convened by Ravennius, bp. of Aries, for
causes prevented Bethlehem from becoming the sole purpose of settling this controversy.
her home. The Origenistic strife divided The decision left considerable ecclesiastical
Jerome and his friends from Rufinus and power in the hands of the abbat. The epistle
Melania, and the new-comers did not escape of Faustus to a deacon named Gratus (al.
the discord. Oceanus warmly espoused the Gratius or Gregorius), who was heretical on the
side of Jerome Fabiola seems to have stood
;
union of the two natures in the Person of
aloof. But efforts were made, if we may Christ, belongs also to this period.
believe Jerome {cont. Ruf. iii. 14), to draw Faustus next succeeded St. Maximus in the
them into the camp of the adversary. Letters episcopate of Riez in Provence. Baronius
in which Rufinus was praised, fraudulently places this as late as 472, but Tillemont
taken from the cell of Jerome's friend Euse- [Mem. vi. p. 775) as early as 462 or even 456.
bius, were found in the rooms of Fabiola and Faustus continued as bishop the stern self-
Oceanus. But this proceeding failed to cause discipline which he had practised as monk and
a breach between Fabiola and Jerome. abbat. He often retired to Lerins, becoming
Jerome bears witness to the earnestness with known throughout and beyond his diocese as
which she attached herself to his teaching. one who gave succour to those sick whether
The two treatises above mentioned are the in body or mind. He seems to have taken a
results of her importunity (Ep. xiv. ed. Vail.). stern view of late repentances, like those so
Jerome was seeking a suitable dwelling-place prevalent at an earlier period in the church
for her, and engaged in writing his treatise on of N. Africa. In the councils of Aries and of
the mystical meaning of the high priest's Lyons a presbyter named Lucidus, accused
garments, when the inroad of the Huns caused of having taught fatalism through misunder-
a panic in Palestine. Jerome and his friends standing Augustine, was induced to retract ;

hurried to the sea-coast at Joppa, and had and Leontius, bp. of Aries, invited Faustus to
hired vessels for flight, when the Huns aban- compose a treatise on grace and free choice.
doned their purpose and turned back. Jer- Faustus appears from Sidonius to have had
ome, with Paula and Eustochium. returned some share in the treaty of 475 between the
to Bethlehem ; but Fabiola went on to Rome. emperor Nepos and Euric king of the Visi-
The last three years of her life were occupied goths, which Tillemont and Gibbon agree in
with incessant activity in good works. In regarding as discreditable to the Roman
conjunction with Pammachius she instituted empire. It wrested Auvergne and subse-
at Portus a hospice (xenodochium), perhaps quently Provence from an orthodox sovereign,
taking her model from that established by and gave them to an Arian. This was
Jerome at Bethlehem and it was so success-
;
unfortunate for Faustus, who c. 481 was
ful that, as Jerome says, in one year it become banished, probably because of his writings
known from Parthia to Britain. But to the against Arianism. His banishment is natur-
last her disposition was restless. She found ally attributed to king Euric, on whose death
Rome and Italy too small for her charities, in 483 he returned to Riez. His life was
and was purposing some long journey or prolonged until at least a.d. 492, possibly for
change of habitation when death overtook her some years later.
A.D. 399. Her funeral was celebrated as a His writings have not come down to us in
Christian triumph. The streets were crowded, a complete and satisfactory condition. The
the hallelujahs reached the golden roof of the following are still accessible :

temples. Jerome's book on the 42 stations (i) Professio Fidei.—He opens with a severe
(mansiones) of the Israelites in the desert was attack on the teaching of Pelagius as heretical,
dedicated to her memorv. [w.h.f.] but expresses a fear of the opposite extreme,
FaUStUS (11), sometimes called " the of such a denial of man's power as a free agent
Breton," from having been born in Brittany, as would virtually amount to fatalism.
or (as Tillemont thinks) in Britain, but more (2) Epistolaad Lucidum Presbyterum. — Here,
generally known as Faustus of Riez from the too, he anathematizes the error of Pelagius ;

name of his see. Born towards the close of but also any who shall have declared that
the 4th cent., he may have lost his father while Christ did not die for all men, or willeth not
he was young, for we only hear of his mother, that all should be saved.
whose fervid piety made a great impression (3) De Gratia Dei et Humanae Mentis libera
on all who saw her. Faustus studied Greek Arbitrio. — After again censuring Pelagius, the
philosophy, but in a Christian spirit mas-
; writer argues strongly on behalf of the need of
tered the principles of rhetoric, and may have human endeavour and co-operation with the
pleaded for a time at the bar. Divine aid. In his interpretation of passages
While still youthful (probably c. 426 or of Holy Scripture {e.f;. Exod. iv. 21, vii. 13 ;

a little later) he entered the famous mon- Rom. ix. 11-26) which favour most Augus-
astery of Lerins, then presided over by St. tinianism, he is most extreme and least success-
Maximus. Here he became a thorough ful. Many passages might almost have come
ascetic and a great student of Holy Scripture, from the pen of some Arminian controversial-
without, however, giving up his philosophic ist at the synod of Dort. In cap. x. of bk. ii.,
pursuits. Here he probably acquired the which is entitled Gentes Deum Naturaliter
reputation, assigned to him by Gennadius, of Sapuisse, Faustus calls attention to the Ian-
A

FELICISSIMUS FELICITAS 363

guage of Daniel towards Nebuchadnezzar and through his administration of church property
his censure of Belshazzar, as a heathen recogni- and was able to threaten with excommunica-
tion of God (Dan. iv. and v.). He also appeals tion any who accepted relief or office from
for the same purpose to the first chapter of Cyprian's commissioners. The latter excom-
Jonah, the repentance of the Ninevites (Jon. municated him. {Ep. 42) with Cyprian's consent.
iii.) and the language of Jeremiah (xviii. 7-10). The mild resolution of the council of 252,
Perhaps the famous expression in the apology making easy the readmission of the lapsed on
of Tertullian, O testimonium animae naturaliter earnest repentance [Cyprianus], destroyed his
Christianae, might be considered to favour the locus standi. The party then coalesced with
view of heathendom here taken by Faustus. that of Privatus (2), who consecrated Fortu-
(4) Ad Monachos Sermo. —
The tone of this natus anti-bishop; and Felicissimus sailed-for
short letter resembles of his other Rome to conciliate or intimidate Cornelius into
that
writings. He excommunication as recognizing him {Ep. 59). Failing here, the
refers to
a terrible to be used in the last party melted quietly away.
weapon only [e.w.b.1
resort. It is sad to see monks go back to the Felicitas (1), commemorated on Nov. 23 ;

world, especially if, after doing so, they retain martyr at Rome with her seven sons, under
their monastic dress. As usual, he is energetic Antoninus Pius, and, according to their Acts,
in his appeals to the human element in religion. at his personal command, Publius being pre-
" Use your will. Resist the devil. Cherish all fect of the city, c. a.d. 150. It is almost
graces, especially obedience and humility." certain that there was no authorized persecu-
{5) De Ratione Fidei Catholicae. —
The former tion under Antoninus Pius, but public
part is a brief statement of the case against calamities stirred up the mob to seek for the
Arianism. It explains the distinction between favour of the gods by shedding Christian
Persona and Natura in reference to our Lord's blood (Julii Capitolini, Vita Antonini Pii, c. 9).
Incarnation, and appears to be addressed to Doubtless, in some such way, Felicitas and her
an orthodox but perplexed friend, whom the children suffered. In her Acts Publius the
author treats as a superior. The second Prefect is represented as commanded by
portion is metaphysical, and discusses the Antoninus to compel her to sacrifice, but in
nature of the soul, which Faustus seems to vain, though he appeals to her maternal
pronounce material. Claudius Mamertus, in affection as well as her fears. He then calls
his de Statu Animae, wrote against Faustus upon each of her sons, Januarius, Felix,
on this point. Faustus may, however, not Philippus, Sylvanus, Alexander, Vitalis, Mar-
have meant to do more than draw a marked tialis, with a similar want of success, the
distinction between the Creator and the mother exhorting them, " Behold, my sons,
creature arguing, as he does, nihil credendtim heaven, and look upwards, whence you expect
;

incorporeum praeter Deuin. Christ with His saints." The prefect, having
(6) Homilia de S. Maximi Laudibiis. —tortured some of them, reported to the
eulogy of his predecessor. emperor, at whose command they were be-
(7) Epistolae. —
Two have already been headed. Their martyrdom is commemorated
described. The other 17 epistles touch upon by Gregory the Great, in Horn. 3 super Fvang.
problems of metaphysics and theology. where, preaching in a church dedicated to her,
Faustus was of unimpeachably good char- he lauds Felicitas as " Plus quam martyr quae
acter ; of an earnest, active, ascetic life septem pignoribus ad regnum praemissis,
;

orthodox on the central doctrine of the toties ante se mortua est. Ad poenas prima
Christian faith and suffering exile for it as a venit sed pervenit octava " {Mart. Vet. Rom.
confessor but stigmatized as a semi- Pelagian, Hieron., Bedae, Adonis, Usuardi).
;
[g.t.s.1
and consequently by many authorities, both Felicitas (2), Mar. 7 ; martyr at Carthage
ancient and modern, denied the title of saint. with Perpetua, Revocatus, Saturninus, and
But his own flock at Riez. deeply moved by Secundinus, all catechumens, and baptized
his life and preaching, and warmly attached after their arrest. Felicitas and her com-
to his memory, insisted on giving him a local panions having been interrogated by Hila-
canonization as Sanctus Faustus Reiensis rianus, the proconsul, and remaining steadfast,
;

they erected a basilica, dedicated in his name, were condemned to be thrown to the beasts
and kept Jan. 18 as his festival. The first on the anniversary of the young Geta's
complete ed. of his works was pub. by A. accession. Felicitas, being in the eighth
Engelbrecht in Corpus Script. Feci. Lat. vol. month of her pregnancy, and the law not
xxi. ; cf. other publications of Engelbrecht on permitting women in her condition to be
the same subject. [j.G.cl executed, was greatly distressed at the delay
Felicissimus (1), deacon of Carthage, whom of her martyrdom. Prayer was therefore
Novatus associated with himself in the man- made that God might grant her an earlier
agement of a district called Mons (Cyp. Ep. delivery, and this accordingly took place a
41). He was the chief agent {signifer sedi- few days after. While the pangs of labour
tionis, Ep. 59) of the anti-Cyprianic partv, were upon her, the jailer, hearing some ex-
which combined the five presbyters originallv clamations of pain, said, " If thy present
opposed to Cyprian's election with the later- sufferings are so great, what wilt thou do when
formed party for the easv readmission of the thou art thrown to the wild beasts ? This
lapsed {Epp. 43, 45). Cyprian {Ep. 52) de- thou didst not consider when thou refusedst
finitely states that Felicissimus had been, when to sacrifice." Whereupon she answered,
the persecution arose, on the point of being " What I now suffer I suffer myself, but then
tried before the presbytery on charges of there will be another Who will suffer for me
homicidal cruelty to his father and wife. Like because I also shall suffer for Him." They
other African and Spanish deacons (Neander, were all put to death together in a.d. 202 or
vol. i. p. 324, ed, Bohn), he acquired influence 203, during the reign of Severus, whose latter
364 FELIX I. FELIX II.

years were marked by a very rigorous perse- represent him, on the contrary, as an inter-
cution (Ael. Spart. Sever. Imp. § 27 in Hist. loper placed in the see violently and irregularly
August. Scriptt.). Few martyrdoms are by the emperor and the Arians, and do not
better attested than this. The ancient allude to his martyrdom. The following is the
Roman calendar, pub. by Bucherius, and account given by Marcellinus and Faustus,
dating from c. 360, mentions only three two contemporary Luciferian presbyters of
African martyrs, viz. Felicitas, Perpetua, and Rome, who must have had good opportunity
Cyprian. Their names are in the canon of the ofknowing the truth. It occurs in the preface
Roman Mass, which mentions none but really to their Libellus Precum addressed to the
primitive martyrs. Their martyrdom is emperors Valentinian, Theodosius, and Arca-
mentioned byTertullian in de Anima, Iv., and dius during the pontificate of Damasus, who
treated at length in three sermons (280, 281, succeeded Liberius, and by whom the writers
282) by St. Augustine, while their burial at complain of being persecuted. Immediately
Carthage, in the Basilica Major, is asserted by on the banishment of Liberius all the clergy,
Victor Vitensis, lib. i. de Pers. Vandal. There including the archdeacon Felix, swore to ac-
are three texts of these Acts — the original Lat. cept no other bishop during the life of the
text, an ancient Gk. version, and a shorter Lat. exiled pope. Notwithstanding, the clergy
text, probably an excerpt from the Gk. version. afterwards ordained this Felix, though the
For all three texts see the ed. of Dean J. A. people were displeased and abstained from
Robinson in Texts and Studies, i. 2 ; cf. also taking part. Damasus, pope after Liberius,
von Gebhardt's Acta. [g.t.s.] was among his perjured supporters. In 357
Felix (1) L, bp. of Rome, probably from the emperor visited Rome, and, being solicited
Jan. 5, 269, to Dec. 30, 274, in the reigns of by the people for the return of Liberius,
Claudius and Aurelian. The Liberian Cata- consented on condition of his complying with
logue (354) names the consuls of the years the imperial requirements, but with the
above mentioned as those contemporary with intention of his ruling the church jointly with
his accession and death, and gives 5 years, 11 Felix. In the third year Liberius returned,
months, and 25 days as the duration of his and the people met him with joy. Felix was
episcopate ; while the Liberian Depositio driven from the city, but soon after, at the
Episcoporum gives Dec. 30 as the date of his instigation of the clergy who had perjured
death. Later and less trustworthy author- themselves in his election, burst into it again,
ities, including the Liber Pontificalis, differ as taking his position in the basilica of Julius
to the date and duration of his episcopate. beyond the Tiber. The faithful and the
He appears in the Roman Calendar as a saint nobles again expelled him with great ignominy.
and martyr, his day being May 30. His After 8 years, during the consulship of Valen-
martyrdom is asserted, not only in the later tinianus and Valens (i.e. a.d. 365), on the loth
editions of the Liber Pontificalis, but also in of the Calends of Dec. (Nov. 22), Felix died,
the early recension of 530, known as the leaving Liberius without a rival as bp. of
Felician Catalogue. Notwithstanding this Rome till his own death on the Sth of the
testimony, his martyrdom seems inconsistent Calends of Oct. (Sept. 24), 366. The other
with the silence of the Liberian Catalogue, and writers mentioned tell us that the election
with his name appearing in the Depositio and consecration of Felix took place in the
Episcoporum, not the Depositio Martyrum of imperial palace, since the people debarred
the same date. the Arians from their churches that three of
;

Nothing is known with certainty of his acts, the emperor's eunuchs represented the people,
except the part he took in the deposition of the consecrators being three heretical bishops,
Paul of Samosata from the see of Antioch. Epictetus of Centumellae, Acacius of Caesarea,
A synod at Antioch (a.d. 290) having deposed and Basil of Ancyra ; and it was only the
this heretical bishop and appointed Domnus Arian section of the clergy, though apparently
in his place, announced these facts in letters a large one, that supported Felix.
addressed to Maximus and Dionysius, bps. of A very different account is given in the
Alexandria and Rome, and to other Catholic Pontifical and in the Acts of St. Felix and
bishops. Felix, who had in the meantime of St. Eusebius ; the former account is un-
succeeded Dionysius, addressed a letter on the doubtedly to be preferred. But though Felix,
subject to Maximus and to the clergy of An- as well as Liberius, has obtained a place in
tioch, fragments of which are preserved in the the list of lawful popes, and has even been
Apologeticus of Cyril of Alexandria, and in the canonized, it is thus evident that his claim
Acts of the council of Ephesus, and which is is more than doubtful. Accordingly, Augus-
also alluded to by Marius Mercator, and by tine, Optatus, and Eutychius (as did
Vincent of Lerins in his Commonitorium cA. ; Athanasius, Jerome, and Rufinus) exclude
Harnack, Gesch. der alt. Ch. Lit. i. 659. Three him from their lists of popes. In the Roman
decretals, undoubtedly spurious, are assigned church, however, his claim to the position
to him (Harduin, Condi.). [J-b.] appears to have remained unquestioned till the
Follx bp. of Rome after the exile of
(2) II., 14th cent., when, an emendation of the Roman
pope Liberius (a.d. 355). He has a place in Martyrology having been undertaken in 1582,
the Roman calendar as a saint and martyr, under pope Gregory XIII., the question was
and in the Pontifical and in the Acts of raised and discussed. Baronius at first op-
St. Felix and St. Eusebius as a legitimately posed the claims of Felix a cardinal, Sanc- ;

elected and orthodox pope, persecuted by the torius, defended them. The question was
emperor and the Arian faction. Contem- decided by the accidental discovery, in the
porary and other ancient writers (Faustus and church of SS. Cosmas and Damian in the
Marcellinus, Hilary, Athanasius, Jerome, Ru- forum, of a coffin bearing the inscription,
finus, Sozomen, and Theodoret) unanimously " Corpus S. Felicis papae et martyris, qui
FELIX III. PELIX III. 365

damnavit Constantium." In the face of this, schism between the East and West ensued
!

Baronius was convinced, and retracted all he during the pontificate of Felix.
had written (Baron, ad Liberiam, c. Ixii.). The condemnation of Monophysitism at
Accordingly Felix retained his place in the Chalcedon by no means silenced its abettors,
Martyrology, though the title of pope was who in the church of Alexandria were especi-
afterwards expunged from the oratio for his ally strong and resolute. They supported
day in the breviary. What became of the Peter Mongus as patriarch ; the orthodox
inscribed slab is not known, and in the ab- supporting first Timotheus Solofacialus, and
sence of any knowledge of its date, its on his death John Talaia. [Acacius (7)
testimony is valueless. —
[j.b Y.] Joannes (11).] Felix, in a synod at Rome,
;

Felix (3) III. (otherwise II.), bp. of Rome renewed his predecessor's excommunication of
from Mar. 483 to Feb. 492. The clergy having Peter Mongus, addressed letters to the emperor
met in St. Peter's church to elect a successor to Zeno and Acacius, patriarch of Constantinople.
Simplicius, Basilius (Praefectus Praetorio and Acacius is urged to renounce Peter Mongus,
Patrician) interposed in the name of his master and induce the emperor to do the same. Felix
Odoacer the Herulian, who since 476 had ruled sent also a formal summons for Acacius to
the West as king of Italy, alleging, as a fact appear at Rome and answer the charge of
known to his hearers, that Simplicius before having disregarded the injunctions of Sim-
his death had conjured the king to allow no plicius. The letter to Zeno implored the
election of a successor without his consent ;
emperor to refrain from rending the seamless
and this to avoid the turmoil and detriment garment of Christ, and to renew his support of
to the church that was likely to ensue. Basilius the one faith which had raised him to the
expressing surprise that the clergy, knowing imperial dignity, the faith of the Roman
this, had taken independent action, proceeded church, against which the Lord had said that
in the king's name to propound a law pro- the gates of hell should not prevail but both
;

hibiting the pope then to be elected and all the emperor and Acacius continued to support
future popes from alienating any farms or Peter. The papal legates having returned to
other church possessions ; declaring invalid Rome, Felix convened a synod of 67 Italian
the titles of any who might thus receive bishops, in which he renewed the excommu-
ecclesiastical property ; requiring the resti- nication of Peter Mongus, and published an
tution of alienated farms with their proceeds, irrevocable sentence of deposition and ex-
or the sale for religious uses of gold, silver, communication against Acacius himself. The
jewels, and clothes unfitted for church pur- sentence of excommunication was served on
poses ; and subjecting all donors and recip- Acacius by one of those zealous champions of
ients of church property to anathema. The Felix, the Sleepless Monks (" Acoemetae "),
assembled clergy seem to have assented to who fastened it to the robe of the patriarch
this, and to have been then allowed to proceed when about to officiate in church. The
with their election, their choice falling on patriarch discovered it, but proceeded with the
Caelius Felix, the son of a presbyter also service, and then, in a calm, clear voice,
called Felix. The Roman synod under pope ordered the name of Felix, bp. of Rome, to
Symmachus (498-514) protested against this be erased from the diptychs of the church.
interference of laymen with the election of a This was on Aug. i, 484. Thus the two chief
pope, and Symmachus consented to declare it bishops of Christendom stood mutually
void, but required the re-enaction of the law excommunicated, and the first great schism
against the alienation of farms, etc. between the East and West began. The
The pontificate of this Felix was chiefly emperor and the great majority of the prelates
remarkable for the commencement of the of the East supported Acacius and thus the ;

schism of 35 years between Rome and the patriarchates of Alexandria, Antioch, and
Eastern patriarchates. In 451 the council Jerusalem, as well as Constantinople, remained
of Chalcedon had condemned the Monophy- out of communion with Rome.
site or Eutychian heresy, adopting the de- Another noted Monophysite, called Peter
finition of faith contained in the famous Fullo [i.e. the Fuller), had excited the orthodox
letter of pope Leo I. to Flavian, patriarch zeal of Felix, patriarch of Antioch. He had
of Constantinople. The council had also added to the Tersanctus the clause, "Who
wast
enacted canons of discipline, the 9th and crucified for us," and was charged with thus
the 17th giving to the patriarchal throne of attributing passibility to the Godhead. To
Constantinople the final determination of him, therefore, from a Roman synod, Felix
causes against metropolitans in the East ; and addressed a synodical letter in which, in the
the 28th assigning to the most holy throne of name of Peter, the chief of the apostles and
Constantinople, or new Rome, equal privileges the head of all sees, he pronounced his de-
with the elder Rome in ecclesiastical matters, position and excommunication.
as being the second after her, with the right In 489 Acacius died, and was succeeded by
of ordaining metropolitans in the Pontic and Flavitas, or Fravitas. Felix, on hearing of
Asian and Thracian dioceses, and bishops the vacancy of the see, wrote to Thalasius, an
among the barbarians therein. This last canon archimandrite of Constantinople, warning him
the legates of pope Leo had protested against and his monks (who appear throughout to
at the council, and Leo himself had afterwards have espoused the cause of Rome) to commu-
repudiated it, as contrary (so he expressed nicate with no successor till Rome had been
himself) to the Nicene canons, and an undue fully apprised of all proceedings and had
usurpation on the part of Constantinople. In declared the church of Constantinople restored
connexion with the heresy condemned by the to its communion. Flavitas having died
council of Chalcedon and with the privileges within four months after his accession, the
assigned by its canons to Constantinople, the popes' letter to him was received by his
366 FELIX IV. PELIX.
successor Euphemius. Felix, though satisfied of Aries, requiring probation from candidates
as to the faith of Euphemius, insisted on the for the priesthood before their ordination,
erasure of the name of Acacius, which condi- see Migne, Patr. Lat. Ixv., An important
tion being demurred to, the breach continued. decretum of this pope was made known by
After his rupture with the East, Felix helped Amelli in 1882, and edited by Mommsen in
to reconstitute the African church, which had Neuer Archiv fur alter deutsch. Gesch. Kunde,
cruelly suffered at the hands of the Arian 1886. See Duchesne, La Succession du pape
Vandals. This persecution, which had raged Felix IV. (Rome, 1883). [j.b— v.]
under king Hunneric, who died in 484, ceased Felix (26) I., bp. of Aptunga, in proconsular
under his successor Gundamund, when a Africa. Felix was one of those who laid
number of apostates sought readmission to hands on Caecilian as bp. of Carthage, if not
catholic communion. A synod of 38 bishops the sole officiating bishop, a.d. 311 (Aug.
held at Rome under Felix in 488 issued a Brevie. Coll. iii. 14, 26; 16, 29). The Donatist
synodical letter dated Mar. 15, laying down party, having failed in the Court of Inquiry
terms of readmission. Felix died Feb. 24, 492. at Rome, under Melchiades, Oct. 2, 313, to
His extant works are 15 letters (Migne, establish their case against Caecilian, turned
Patr. Lat. Iviii. 893 ff.). Gratian gives also a their attack on Felix, whom they sought to
decretum as his, to the effect that the royal convict of the infamous crime of " tradition "
will should yield to priests in ecclesiastical in the persecution of Maximus, a.d. 303. The
causes. The ancient authorities for his Life emperor gave orders to Aelianus, the procon-
are his letters and those of his successor sul of Africa, to hold an inquiry on the spot,
Gelasius, theBreviariumof LiberatusDiaconus, which took place on Feb. 15, 314 (Aug. Post.
and the Histories of Evagrius and Nicephorus Coll. 38, 56; Ep. 43, 3-14 88 c Cresc. iii.-
Callistus. [j.B — Y.]
; ;

61) at Carthage, in the presence of many who


Felix (4) IV. (otherwise HI. see Felix
II.), had held municipal offices at the time of the

;

bp. of Rome (July 526 Oct. 530) during 4 persecution. In vain the prosecution relied
years, 2 months, and 14 or 18 days (Anastas. on a chain of fraudulent evidence elaborately
Biblioth.). The same authority states that he concocted. The proconsul pronounced the
built the basilica of SS. Cosmas and Damian, complete acquittal of Felix, which was con-
restored that of the martyr St. Saturninus, and firmed by the emperor, and repeated in a
was buried, on Oct. 12, in the basilica of St. letter to Verinus, or Valerius, the vicar of
Peter. There is little to be told of him, except Africa, a.d. 321. The whole case was brought
the circumstances of his appointment. His up again at Carth. Conf., a.d. 411, when
predecessor, John I., had died in prison at Augustine argued that there was no doubt of
Ravenna, into which he had been thrown by the completeness of the imperial decision.
Theodoric the Ostrogoth, who then ruled the Aug. c. Cresc. iii. 81, iv. 79 de Unic. Bapt.
;

West as king of Italy. Theodoric took the 28 ;Brev. Coll. 41, 42 Post. Coll. 56
; Mon. ;

unprecedented step of appointing his successor Vet. Don. iii. pp. 160-167 and 341-343, ed,
on his own authority, without waiting for the Oberthiir ; Bruns. Concil. i. 108 Routh, Rel.
;

customary election by clergy and people. Sacr. iv. 92. [h.w.p.]


This high-handed proceeding seems to have Felix (174), bp. of Tubzoca (perhaps Thibaris
been at length acquiesced in. No subsequent in Numidia). His story illustrates the first
king or emperor laid claim to a like power of edict of persecution issued by Diocletian in
interference in the appointment of popes, Feb. 303, and the special severity with which
though the confirmation of elections by the it was worked in the West under the emperor
civil power was insisted on, and continued till Maximian. This edict did not authorize death
the election of Zachary in 752, when the con- as a punishment, but simply prohibited the
firmation of the exarch of Ravenna, as repre- assembly of Christians for religious worship ;

senting the Eastern emperor, was first dis- ordered the destruction of churches and sacred
pensed with under the Carlovingian empire. documents, and authorized torture. Official
The same freedom of election by clergy and notice of its publication arrived at Tubzoca on
people continued to be the theory till the June 5, and the overseer of the city, Magnel-
appointment was given to the College of lianus, summoned first the clergy and then
Cardinals during the pontificate of Nicholas II., the bishop, and demanded the sacred writings.
A.D. 1059. For previous interventions of the Felix replied, " It is better that I should be
civilpower see Bonifacius II., Eulalius (1), burned rather than the Holy Scriptures, since
Felix III., Symmachus, Laurentius (10). it is better to obey God rather than man."
The only further event known as marking the Three days were given him for reconsidera-
pontificate of Felix is the issue of an edict by tion, during which time he was committed to
Athalaric, the successor of Theodoric, requir- the private custody of Vincentius Celsinus, a
ing all civil suits against ecclesiastics to be leading citizen. Upon his continued refusal
preferred before the bishop and not the secular he was sent to the proconsul Anulinus at
judge. The edict was called forth by Felix, Carthage, June 24. By him the bishop was
with the Roman clergy, having complained to twice examined. With the edict there seems
the king that the Goths had invaded the rights to have been sent by Maximian the praetorian
of churches and dragged the clergy before lay prefect or commander of the emperor's guard,
tribunals. It extended only to the Roman to secure its due execution. To him, upon his
clergy, " in honour of the Apostolic see " final refusal, Felix and his companions were
(Cassiodor. lib. 8, c. 24). Justinian I. after- delivered for transporation into Italy, arriving
wards extended it, though with an appeal to after four days' sail in Sicily. At Agrigentum,
the civil tribunal, to all ecclesiastics (Justin. Catana, Messana, and Taurominium they were
Novel. 83, 123). received with great honour by the Christians.
Vor this pope's letter, esp. letter to Caesarius Thence they were carried by the prefect to
FELIX OF NOLA FLAVIANUS I. 367

Venusia, in Apulia, where, having again called bishop he continued to occupy the family
upon Felix to surrender the sacred writings, mansion at Antioch, which he devoted to the
he condemned him to death for disobedience. reception of the sick and distressed of his flock.
Felix suffered by beheading, Aug. 30, on which Chrysostom, in his highly coloured eulogium
day he is commemorated by Bede. There is pronounced on receiving priest's orders at his
considerable confusion as to details in different hands, records that he was remarkable from
versions of the Acts, which d'Achery and his earliest years for temperance and contempt
Baluze have in vain endeavoured to remedy. of luxury, although early deprived of parental
Martyr. Vet. Roman. Bedae, Adonis, Usuardi ;
control and exposed to temptations incident
Baronius, Annal. a.d. 302, cxvii.-cxxiii. ;
to youth, wealth, and good birth. Theodoret
Ruinart, Acta Sincera; Surius ;
d'Acherii {H. E. ii. 24) relates that, when a half-concealed
Spicileg. t. xii.634 ; Baluz. Miscell. t. ii. p. 77 ;
Arianism was triumphing, Flavian, with his
Tillem. v. 202. [g.t.s.] friend Diodorus (afterwards bp. of Tarsus),
Felix (186) of Nola. [P.a.ulinus (8).] left his home and adopted the life of a solitary.
Felix (212). [SciLLiTAN Martyrs.] The necessities of the times soon recalled them
Firmilianus (1), St., bp. of Caesarea in Cappa- to Antioch, where as laymen they kept alive
docia, one of the greatest prelates of his time. an orthodox remnant. Leontius was then the
In 232 he already occupied his see (Eus. vi. intruding bp. of Antioch, and, while a Euse-
26, 27), though Cave {Hist. i. p. 123) speaks bian at heart, sought by temporizing to pre-
of 233 as the year of his elevation. When serve a hollow peace in his church. The
Origen soon after left Egypt, Firmilian induced counsel of the orthodox bp. Eustathius, before
him to visit Cappadocia ; subsequently he he was expelled from Antioch (c. 328), was that
paid Origen long visits in Judaea to advance his adherents should maintain the unity of the
his own knowledge of theology (Eus. I.e.). church and continue in communion with his
He urged Dionysius of Alexandria to attend successors in the see ; but there was no small
the council of Antioch, held to repudiate Nova- risk of their being thus gradually absorbed by
tianism {ib. vi. 46 ; cf. Routh, R. S. iii. 51). the Eusebians and losing hold of the Catholic
In 256 he is addressed by Cyprian in a faith. This danger was strenuously met by
letter now lost as to the Asiatic practice of Flavian and Diodorus. They rallied the faith-
rebaptizing those baptized by heretics. In ful about them, accustomed them to assemble
his long reply (Cyp. Ep. 75) Firmilian describes round the tombs of the martyrs, and exhorted
it as impossible to add much to the strength them to adhere steadfastly to the faith. They
of Cyprian's arguments. He is clear as to the are said by Theodoret to have revived the anti-
antiquity of the practice in Asia, which he phonal chanting of the Psalms, which tradition
regards as ratified by the action of the council ascribed to Ignatius {ib. ii. 24 Socr. H. E.
;

of Iconium in the case of the Montanists. He vi. 8). Leontius endeavoured to check the
speaks of several meetings of the Cappadocian growing influence of these gatherings by
bishops, one immediately before his writing. causing them to be transferred from the
Baronius, Labbe, and other Roman writers martyries without the walls to the churches of
have been anxious to prove that the baptismal the city, but this only increased their popu-
dispute originated with Firmilian and the larity and strengthened the cause of ortho-
East, but the attempt is against the whole doxy. Flavian and Diodorus became all-
tenor of Cyprianic correspondence as well as powerful at Antioch Leontius, being unable
;

the express statement of Eusebius (vii. 3). to resist them, was compelled to retrace his
To Firmilian the see of Jerusalem appears to steps (Theod. ii. 24).
be the central see, so far as such an idea arises. Leontius was succeeded by Eudoxius, then
He presided at Antioch, a.d. 266, in the first by the excellent Meletius, who was deposed,
synod held to try Paul of Samosata, and visit- and in 361 by EuzoJus, the old comrade of
ed Antioch twice on this business (Concil. Arius. Euzoius was repudiated with horror
Antioch. contr. Paul. Samos. in Routh, R. S. by all the orthodox. Those who had till now
iii. 304; Eus. vii. 30). Imposed upon by remained in communion with the bishops re-
Paul's promises, he procured the postponement cognized by the state, separated themselves
of a decision against him. But when it was and recognized Meletius as their bishop. The
necessary to convene another synod in 272, old Catholic body, however, who bore the
Firmilian, who was to have again presided, name of Eustathians, would not submit to a
died on his journey, at Tarsus. To his bishop, however orthodox, consecrated by
contemporaries his 40 years of influential Arians, and continued to worship apart from
episcopate, his friendship with Origen and their Meletian brethren, as well as from Euzo-
Dionysius, the appeal to him of Cyprian, and ius, having as leader Paulinus, a presbyter
his censure of Stephanus might well make him highly esteemed by all parties. This schism
seem the most conspicuous figure of his time. between two orthodox bodies caused much
Routh (vol. iii. p. 149) points to him as one pain to Athanasius and others. A council at
of the oldest authorities who states with pre- Alexandria, early in 362, wisely advised that
cision the anti- Pelagian doctrine. Basil (de Paulinus and his flock should unite with
Spiritu Sancto, xxix.) speaks of his discourses Meletius, who had now returned from exile ;

as early testimonies to the exactness of his but the precipitancy of Lucifer of Cagliari per-
own doctrine, and quotes his agreement with petuated the schism by ordaining Paulinus
Cyprian on baptism in the epistle to Amphi- bishop. The Arian emperor Valens came to
lochius {Ep. 188). [E.W.B.] reside at Antioch in June 370 and this was
;

Flavianus (4) I., bp. of Antioch, 381-404. the signal for a violent persecution of the
Born at Antioch, of a distinguished family, he orthodox. Meletius was banished a third
was still very young when his father's death time, and the duty of ministering to the
left him heir of his considerable property. As faithful under their prolonged trials devolved
368 PLAVIANUS I. FLAVIANUS I.

on Flavian and Diodorus. The Catholics, supported by the bishops of Palestine, Phoe-
having been deprived of their churches, took nicia, and Syria (Socr. v. 10). A synodal letter
refuge among ravines and caverns in the was, however, dispatched to Damasus and the
abrupt mountain ranges overhanging the city. Western bishops, recognizing Flavian's con-
Here they worshipped, exposed to the assaults secration as legitimate (Theod. v. 9). Paulinus
of a rude soldiery, by whom they were re- himself attended the council at Rome, accom-
peatedly dislodged. The persecution ceased panied by Epiphanius and his ardent supporter
with the death of Valens in 378. The exiles Jerome. At this council the West refused to
were recalled, and Meletius resumed charge of acknowledge Flavian as canonically elected.
his flock. His official recognition as the It is said that they even excommunicated him
Catholic bp. of Antioch was more tardy. and his two consecrators (Soz. vii. 11). The
Gratian had commanded that the churches two rivals continued to exercise episcopal
should be given up to prelates in communion functions for their respective flocks. Conse-
with Damasus, bp. of Rome, and that Arian quently church discipline became impossible.
intruders should be expelled. But here were Early in his episcopate Flavian exercised his
two bishops with equal claims to orthodoxy, authority against the Syrian sect of perfec-
Paulinus and Meletius, and a third, Vitalian, tionists known as Euchites or Messalians, and to
who held Apollinarian views. Sapor, a high make himself acquainted with their doctrines,
military officer, to whom Gratian had com- which it was their habit to conceal, he con-
mitted the execution of the edict, was much descended to an unworthy act of deception.
perplexed. Flavian convinced him that the In 386 Flavian ordained Chrysostom pres-
right lay with Meletius. The separation, byter, and Chrysostom preached a eulogistic
however, still continued. Paulinus declined inaugural discourse (Chrys. u.s. §§ 3, 4). The
the proposal of Meletius that they should be sedition at Antioch and the destruction of
recognized as of equal authority and that the the Imperial Statues, 387, shewed Flavian at
survivor should be sole bishop. The Oriental his best. When the brief fit of popular mad-
churches recognized Meletius, the West and ness was over and the Antiochenes awoke to
Egypt Paulinus {ib. v. 1-3). In 381 Flavian their danger, Flavian at their entreaty became
accompanied Meletius to the council of their advocate with the emperor, starting
Constantinople, during the session of which immediately on his errand of mercy (Chrys.
Meletius died. Gregory of Nazianzus entreat- de Statuis, iii. i, xxi. 3). The success of his
ed his brother-bishops to heal the schism by mission was complete. Though Paulinus died
recognizing Paulinus as orthodox bp. of in 388, theschism continued for on his death-
;

Antioch (Greg. Naz. de Vita Sac. v. 1572 seq. bed he had consecrated Evagrius, a presbyter
p. 757). But this, however right in itself, of his church, as his successor (Socr. v. 15 ;

would have been a triumph for the Westerns. Soz. vii. 15 Theod. v. 23). Theodosius sum-
;

The council was composed of Oriental bishops, moned Flavian to meet him at a synod at
and, in spite of the remonstrances of Gregory, Capua. Flavian excused himself as winter was
Flavian was elected to succeed Meletius. setting in, but promised to obey the emperor's
Flavian cannot be altogether excused for this biddingin the spring (Theod. v. 23). Ambrose
continuance of the schism ; and the less so if, and the other leading Western prelates urged
as Socrates (v. 5) and Sozomen (vii. 3, n) Theodosius to compel Flavian to come to Rome
state, he was one of the six leading clergy of and submit to the judgment of the church.
Antioch who had sworn not to seek the Flavian replied to the emperor that if his
bishopric themselves at the death of Meletius episcopal seat only was the object of attack,
or Paulinus, but to acknowledge the survivor. he would prefer to resign it altogether. The
This charge, however, is rendered very doubt- knot was before long cut by the death of
ful by the absence of reference to it in the Evagrius. Flavian's influence prevented the
letters of Ambrose or any contemporary election of a successor. The Eustathians,
documents published by adherents of Paulinus however, still refused to acknowledge Flavian,
during the controversy. Flavian was con- and continued to hold their assemblies apart
secrated by Diodorus of Tarsus and Acacius (Soz. vii. 15, viii. 3 Socr. v. 15).
; This
of Beroea with the ratification of the council. separation lasted till the episcopate of
Paulinus remonstrated in vain (Theod. v. 23), Alexander, 414 or 415. The division between
but his cause was maintained by Damasus and Flavian and Egypt and the West was finally
the Western bishops and those of Egypt ;
healed by Chrysostom, who took the oppor-
while even at Antioch, though most of the tunity of the presence of Theophilus, patriarch
Meletians welcomed Flavian with joy (Chrys. of Alexandria, at Constantinople for his con-
Horn, cum Presbyt. fuit ordinatus, § 4), some, secration in 398, to induce him to become
indignant at his breaking an engagement, real reconciled with Flavian, and to join in
or implied, separated from his communion dispatching an embassy to Rome to supplicate
and joined Paulinus (Soz. vii. 11). The West Siricius to recognize Flavian as canonical
refused all intercourse with Flavian, and the bishop of Antioch. Their mission was entirely
council at Aquileia in Sept. 381 wrote to successful (Socr. v. 15 ; Soz. viii. 3; Theod.
Theodosius in favour of Paulinus, and re- V. 23). To shew that all angry feeling had
quested him to summon a council at Alex- ceased, and to conciliate his opponents, Flavian
andria to decide that and other questions. put the names of Paulinus and Evagrius on
Theodosius acquiesced, but selected Rome. the diptychs (Cyril. Alex. Ep. 56, p. 203).
The Eastern prelates declined to attend, and Flavian lived long enough to see the deposition
held a synod of their own at Constantinople and exile of Chrysostom, against which he
in 382. Even here the bishops of Egypt, protested with his last breath. His death
Cyprus, and Arabia recognized Paulinus, and probably occurred in 404 (Pallad. Dial. p. 144 ;

demanded the banishment of Flavian, who was Soz. viii. 24 Theophan. p. 68).
;
He governed
FLAVIANUS FLAVIANUS II. 369

the church of Antioch for 23 years and ; H. E. ix. I ; Theophan. Chronogr. pp. 84-88,
Tillemont thinks it probable that he lived etc. Niceph. Constant, xiv. 47.
; [w.m.s.]
to the age of 95. The Greek church com- Flavianus (16) II., bp. of Antioch, 498-512,
memorates him on Sept. 26. previously a monk in the monastery of Til-
He behind certain homilies, of which a
left mognon, in Coelesyria (Evagr. H. E. iii. 32),
few fragments are preserved. Theodoret, in and at the time of his consecration " apocrisi-
his Eranistes, quotes one on John i. 14 (Dial. i. arius " or nuncio of the church of Antioch at
p. 46), another on St. John the Baptist (ib. the court of Constantinople (Vict. Tunun.
p. 66), on Easter, and the treachery of Judas Chron. Theophan. Chronogr. p. 122). Be-
;

(Dial. iii. p. 250) or the Theophania, and a fore his consecration Flavian passed for an
passage from his commentary on St. Luke opponent of the decrees of Chalcedon, and on
(Dial. ii. p. 160). [e.v.] his appointment he sent to announce the fact
Flavianus i8th bp. of Constantinople,
(8), to John Haemula, bp. of Alexandria, with
between Proclus and Anatolius, for about two letters of communion, and a request for the
or three years. He is described by Niceph- same in return (Evagr. iii. 23). He speedily,
orus as being at his election guardian of the however, withdrew from intercourse with the
sacred vessels of the great church of Constan- patriarchs of Alexandria, and joined the
tinople, with a reputation for a heavenly life. opposite party, uniting with Elias of Jeru-
At the time of his consecration Theodosius II. salem and Macedonius of Constantinople
was staying at Chalcedon. Chrysaphius his (Liberat. c. 18, p. 128). Flavian soon found
minister immediately plotted against the new a bitter enemy in the turbulent Monophysite
patriarch. Foiled in an attempt to extort a Xenaias or Philoxenus, bp. of Hierapolis. On
present of gold to the emperor for acknow- Flavian's declaring for the council of Chalce-
ledging his elevation, Chrysaphius, with the don. Xenaias denounced his patriarch as a
empress Eudocia for an ally, planned two concealed Nestorian. Flavian made no diffi-
methods of attack against Flavian the direct — culty in anathematizing Nestorius and his
subversion of the authority of the emperor's doctrines. Xenaias demanded that he should
sister Pulcheria and the support of Eutyches,
; anathematize Diodorus, Theodore, Theodoret,
to whom the archbishop was opposed. Pul- and others, as necessary to completely prove
cheria had devoted herself to a religious life ;
that he was not a Nestorian. On his refusing,
let the emperor order the prelate to ordain Xenaias stirred up against him the party of
her a deaconess. Flavian, receiving the Dioscorus in Egypt, and charged Flavian
emperor's command to this effect, and beyond before Anastasius with being a Nestorian
measure grieved, sent a private message to (Evagr. iii. 31 Theophan. p. 128). Anastasius
;

Pulcheria, who divined the scheme, and to used pressure, to which Flavian yielded par-
avoid a struggle retired to Hebdomum, where tially, trusting by concessions to satisfy his
for a time she led a private life (Theoph. enemies. He convened a synod of the pre-
u. infr.). lates of his patriarchate which drew up a
Flavian having assembled a council of 40 letter to Anastasius confirming the first three
bishops at Constantinople Nov. 8, 448, to councils, passing over that of Chalcedon in
compose a difference between the metropolitan silence, and anathematizing Diodorus, Theo-
bp. of Sardis and two bishops of his province, dore, and the others. Xenaias, seeking
Eusebius, bp. of Dorylaeum, appeared and Flavian's overthrow, required of him further
presented his indictment against Eutyches. a formal anathema of the council of Chalcedon
The speech of Flavian remains, concluding and of all who admitted the two natures. On
with this appeal to the bp. of Dorylaeum : his refusal, Xenaias again denounced him to
" Let your reverence condescend to visit him the emperor. Flavian declared his acceptance
and argue with him about the true faith, and of the decrees of Chalcedon in condemning
if he shall be found in very truth to err, then Nestorius and Eutyches, but not as a rule of
he shall be called to our holy assembly, and faith. Xenaias having gathered the bishops
shall answer for himself." For the particulars of Isauria and others, induced them to draw up
of this great controversy see Di^^corus and a formula anathematizing Chalcedon and the
Eutyches. When, on Aug. 8, 449, the Latro- two natures, and Flavian and Macedonius,
cinium assembled at Ephesus, Eutyches refusing to sign this, were declared excom-
violently attacked the archbishop. municate, A.D. 509 (Evagr. U.S. Theophan.;

On Aug. II, 449, Flavian expired at Hypepe p. 131). The next year the vacillating Flavian
in Lydia from the effects of the barbarous received letters from Severus, the uncompro-
ill-usage which resulted from this attack. mising antagonist of Macedonius, on the sub-
When Pulcheria returned to power, after her ject of anathematizing Chalcedon, and the
brother's death, she had Flavian's remains, reunion of the Acephali with the church
which had been buried obscurely, brought with (Liberat. c. 19, p. 135). This so irritated
great pomp to Constantinople.' It was more Macedonius that he anathematized his former
like a triumph, says the chronicler, than a friend, and drove with indignation from his
funeral procession. presence the apocrisiarii of Antioch (Theophan.
Among the documents which touch on the p. 131). On the expulsion of Macedonius,
career of Flavian are the reply of Petrus A.D. 511, Flavian obeyed the emperor in re-
Chrysologus, archbp. of Ravenna, to a circular cognizing his successor Timotheus, on being
appeal of Eutyches, and various letters of convinced of his orthodoxy, but without dis-
Theodoret. Leo wrote Flavian a beautiful guising his displeasure at the violent and un-
letter before hearing that he was dead. canonical measures by which Macedonius had
Leo. Mag. Epp. 23, 26, 27, 28, 44 Facund, ; been deposed. This exasperated Anastasius,
Pro Trih. Capit. viii. 5 xii. 5; Evagr. ii. 2.
; who readily acceded to the request of Xenaias
etc. ; Liberatus Diac. Breviar. xi. xii. Soz. ; and Soterichus that a council should be con-
24
370 FLORENTIUS FORTUNATUS
vened, ostensibly for the more precise declara- Florentius an appeal against his condemnation
tion of the faith on the points at issue, but really to the churches of Rome, Alexandria, and
to depose Flavian and Elias of Jerusalem but ; Jerusalem. The bishop availed himself of
it was broken up by the emperor's mandate, to the plea that the trial was closed to exclude
the extreme vexation of Soterichus and Xenaias, the registration of the appeal [ib. 244). When
without pronouncing any sentence (Labbe, Con- the council of Chalcedon met, Florentius was
di, iv. 1414, vii. 88 Theophan. u.s. Coteler.
; ; present with other high civil dignitaries but ;

Monum. Eccl. Graec. iii. 298). Flavian's per- there is no record of the part he took. We
plexities were increased by the inroad of a have letters to Florentius from Theodoret
tumultuous body of monks from Syria Prima, (Ep. 89), Isidore of Pelusium (Ep. lib. i. 486),
clamouring for the anathematization of and Firmus of Caesarea (Ep. 29). [e.v.]
Nestorius and all supposed favourers of his Florinus (1), for some time in the latter half
doctrines. The citizens rose against them, of the 2nd cent, a presbyter at Rome, deprived
slew many, and threw their bodies into for falling into heresy. He is known from two
the Orontes. A rival body of monks poured notices (v. 15, 20) in Eusebius, taken from
down from the mountain ranges of Coele- writings of Irenaeus against Florinus. One is
syria, eager to do battle in defence of their an interesting fragment of a letter to Florinus,
metropolitan and former associate. Flavian in which Irenaeus records his youthful recol-
was completely unnerved, and, yielding to the lections of Polycarp, representing how that
stronger party, pronounced a public anathema bishop, whose good opinion Florinus had once
in his cathedral on the decrees of Chalcedon been anxious to gain, would have been shocked
and the four so-called heretical doctors. His at his present opinions. The fragment con-
enemies, determined to obtain his patriarchate tains unmistakable internal evidence of
for one of their own party, accused him to the genuineness. The title of the letter to Flor-
emperor of condemning with his lips what he inus was On Monarchy, or that God is not the
still held in his heart. The recent disturb- Author of Evil, and Eusebius remarks that
ances at Antioch were attributed to him, and Florinus seems to have maintained the op-
afforded the civil authorities a pretext for posite opinion. Later writers have naturally
desiring him to leave Antioch for a time. His followed the report of Eusebius. Philaster
quitting Antioch was seized on by the emperor (79) refers to an unnamed heretic, who taught
as an acknowledgment of guilt. Anastasus that things which God made were in their own
declared the vacant, sent Severus to
see nature evil. Augustine (66) calls the anonv-
occupy it, and banished Flavian to Petra in mous heretic Florinus and, with little prob-
Arabia, where he died in 518. Eutych. Alex. ability, makes him the founder of a sect of
Annal. Eccl. p. 140 Marcell. Chron.
; Theo- ; Floriniani. He probably arrived at this re-
phan. p. 134 Evagr. H. E. iii. 32.
; [e.v.] sult by combining the notice in Eusebius with
FlorentiUS (50), a chief minister of state at Philaster's mention in another place of
Constantinople under Theodosius II. and Floriani. The work of Irenaeus which we
Marcian, a man of the highest reputation for possess does not mention Florinus, and has no
soundness of faith, purity of life, and states- trace of the letter, nor does Tertullian, in
manlike wisdom (Labbe, Concil. iv. 220). He dealing with the same subject, employ the
was consul in a.d. 429, patrician in 448, pre- letter to Florinus. If Florinus ever in a
fect of the praetorian guards, and the high heretical sense made God the author of evil,
dignity of prefect of the East was bestowed his errors afterwards took the opposite direc-
on him a seventh time by Marcian in 450. tion, and he became a Valentinian. In reply
In 448, when Flavian had resolved to put to him Irenaeus composed his work On the
Eutyches on his trial for heretical doctrine, Ogdoad. If the controversy of Irenaeus with
Theodosius demanded that Florentius should Florinus was earlier than the publication of the
have a seat at the synod as his representative. treatise on heresies, we should expect some
Hitherto the ostensible reason for the presence trace of it therein and the fact that, after ;

of imperial officers at ecclesiastical synods was the publication of a treatise dealing so fully
the preservation of order. The ground ex- with Valeaj^nianism, a separate treatise on
pressly assigned by the emperor for requiring the Ogdoaa was necessary, may point to the
the admission of Florentius, viz. that the controversy having arisen later. In favour
matters under discussion concerned the faith, of the later date is also the fact that there
was a startling innovation which Flavian is extant a Syriac fragment (Harvey, ii. 457),
withstood as long as he dared (Acac. Hist. purporting to be an extract from a letter
Brevicul. p. 112 Liberat. Breviar. c. xi.
;
;
of Irenaeus to Victor of Rome concerning
Labbe, Concil. iv. 247). On the opening of Florinus, a presbyter, who was a partisan of
the trial Florentius took his seat among the the error of Valentinus, and had published an
metropolitans, next to Seleucus, bp. of Amasea abominable book. Florinus is not named
(Labbe, 238 ;Liberat. p. 60), and disclaimed by Epiphanius, Philaster, or Pseudo-Tertullian
all desire to dogmatize, or to forget his posi- who has so notices of Roman heretics ;
many
tion as a layman but he took a very leading
; and it is likely, therefore, that he was not
and authoritative part in the discussion, and named in the earlier work of Hippolytus, nor
manifested a strong leaning towards the in the lectures of Irenaeus, on which that
acquittal of Eutyches. But his efforts to work was founded he is not named in the
;

induce Eutyches to acknowledge the two later work of Hippolytus, nor by Tertullian.
natures in Christ or to adopt language which This silence is not easily explained if either
might satisfy the council were fruitless, and Florinus or any school of Floriniani were any
the interests of orthodoxy compelled him to source of danger after his exposure bylRENAEUS
assent to his condemnation (Labbe, 507, 517). (cf. Zahn, Forschiingen, iv. 28:5-^08). [g.s;]
As Eutyches left the hall he lodged with Fortunatus (17), Venantius Honorlus Cle-

FORTUNATUS PORTY MARTYRS, THE 371

mentianus, bp. of Poictiers, and the last repre- dressed toRhadegund and Agnes, and a short
sentative of Latin poetry in Gaul, was born epigram ad Theuchildem.
c. 530 at Ceneta, the modern Ceneda, near The Lives of eleven saints Hilary of
(5) —
Tarvisium (Treviso) (Vit. Sand. Martin, lib. Germain of Paris, Aubin of Angers,
Poitiers,
iv. 668). He seems to have resided at an Paternusof Avranches, Rhadegund of Poictiers,
early age at Aquileia, where he came under the Amant of Rodez, Medard of Noyon, Remy of
influence of one Paulus, who was instrumental Rheims, Lubin of Chartres, Mauril of Angers,
in his conversion. Paulus Diaconus (Hist. —
and Marcel of Paris but the first book of the
Langobard. lib. ii. 23) relates that he studied Life of Hilary and the Lives of the three last-
grammar, rhetoric, and poetry at Ravenna. named saints ought probably to be attributed
In gratitude for his recovery from blindness, to another Fortunatus. To these must be
he set out on a pilgrimage to the tomb of St. added an account of the martyrdom at Paris
Martin of Tours c. 565. Crossing the Alps and of St. Denys, St. Rusticus, and St. Eleutherius.
passing into Austrasia, he visited king Sieg- His style is pedantic, his taste bad, his
bert, for whom he composed an epithalamium grammar and prosody seldom correct for many
on his marriage with Brunehault, couched in lines together, but two of his longer poems
terms of extravagant flattery. Euphronius bp. display a simplicity and pathos foreign to his
of Tours and Fortunatus became close friends —
usual style viz. that on the marriage of
(Miscell. iii. 1-3). After completing his pil- Galesuintha, sister of Brunehaut, with Chil-
grimage, he continued to travel in Gaul, peric, and his Elegy upon the Fall of Thuringia.
because of the disturbed state of Italy, due to The latest and best ed. of his works is by
the incursions of the Lombards, but finding Leo and Krusch (Berlin, 1881-1885). good A
an additional inducement in the society of earlier ed. by Luchi is reprinted in Migne's
Rhadegund of Poictiers, for whom he conceived Pair. I.at. Ixxxviii. Augustin Thierry, Recits
a Platonic attachment. She was the daughter merovingiens, t. ii. Recit. vi. ; and Ampere,
of Bertharius, king of the Thuringians, and Hist. lit. de la France, t. ii. c. 13. [e.m.y.]
had been espoused against her will to Lothair I., Fortunatus (18), a bp. who has been con-
king of Neustria, but had separated from founded with Venantius Fortunatus, bp. of
him, and retired in 550 to Poictiers, where she Poictiers. Born at Vercellae, he migrated into
founded the convent of St. Croix, more for Gaul, and became intimate with St. Germanus,
literary than for religious seclusion, appointing who induced him to write the Life of St.
her own domestic Agnes the first abbess. At Marcellus. He was probably the author of
what date Fortunatus visited Poictiers is bk. i. of the Life of St. Hilary of Poictiers,
uncertain, but he was induced to become and of three other Lives of saints ascribed to
chaplain and almoner to the convent. Rha- his more distinguished namesake. He died at
degund employed her poet-chaplain in corre- Celles, in the diocese of Sens, c. 569. Rivet,
spondence with the prelates of Gaul, and Hist. lit. de la France, t. iii. p. 298. [e.m.y.]
despatched him from time to time on delicate Forty Martyrs, The. Three groups occur
missions. He
thus became intimate with as such :

Gregory of Tours, Syagrius of Autun, Felix of (i) Forty soldiers, who suffered under
Nantes, Germanus of Paris, Avitus of Cler- Licinius, 320, at Sebaste in Armenia. list A
mont, and many others, to whom his poems of their names is given in the martyrology of
are addressed. He also composed Lives of Ado under March 11. [See Sebaste, Forty
the saints, theological treatises, and hymns, Martyrs of, in D. C. A.] They were young,
including the famous Vexilla Regis, composed brave, and noted for their services. The
for a religious ceremony at Poictiers. The emperor having ordained that the military
Pange Lingua, though generally ascribed to police of the cities should offer sacrifices, the
his pen, was more probably composed, as governor called upon these forty to comply.
Sirmond has shewn {in Notis ad Epist. Sidon. They refused, and withstood both bribes and
Apollin. lib. iii. Ep. 4), by Claudianus Mamer- threats. Thereupon a new punishment was
tus. Fortunatus was ordained priest, and, devised. They were immersed for a whole
subsequently to the death of Rhadegund in night in a frozen pond, a hot bath being placed
597, succeeded Plato in the bishopric of within sight for any who might choose to avail
Poictiers ; but died early in the 7th cent. themselves of it, their doing so, however, being
His works comprise : (i) Eleven Books of the sign of apostasy. The trial was too great
Miscellanies, chiefly in elegiac verse, interest- for one. He left the pond and flung himself
ing for the light they throw upon the manners into the bath, but as soon as he touched the hot
of the time and the history of art (Miscell. i. water he died. The number of forty was not,
12 ; iii. 13), but as literature all but worthless. however, broken. The sentinel who watched
(2) The Life of St. Martin of Tours in four the bath saw in a vision angels descend and
books, consisting of 2,245 hexameter lines, distribute rewards to all in the pond. The
hastily composed, and little more than a guard at once stripped off his clothing and
metrical version of Severus Sulpicius's incom- took the vacant place in the pond. Next
parably better prose. morning they were all flung into fires. There
(3) An elegiac poem in three cantos, written was one Melito, younger and more vigorous
in the character, and evidently under the than the rest, whose resolution they thought
inspiration, of Rhadegund. The first, de they might shake. His mother, however, who
Excidio Thuringiae, is dedicated to her cousin was present, herself placed him in the execu-
Amalfred (or Hermanfred) ; the second is a tioner's cart, saying :
" Go, my son, finish this
panegyric of Justin II. and his empress Sophia, happy voyage with thy comrades, that thou
who had presented Rhadegund with a piece mayst not be the last presented to God."
of the true cross. Their relics were carefully preserved and
(4) A collection of 150 elegiac verses ad- carried to various cities, where many churches
372 PRAVITTA PRUCTUOSUS
were built in their honour. The mother rejected from the diptychs, they replied that
Emmelia, and the sister Macrina, of St. Basil they had no instructions on that point. The
obtained some for their monastery near the joy of the pope was Anally destroyed by the
village of Annesi in Pontus, where already a arrival at Rome of a copy of the letter which
church had been built in their honour (Greg. Fravitta had sent to Mongus. Directly con-
Nys. Vit. S. Macrin.). Sozomen {H. E. ix. 2) trary to that which Felix had received, it actu-
tells a strange story about another set of their ally denied all communion with Rome. The
relics. In addition to the authorities quoted, pope would not hear a word more from the
consult Pitra, Analect. Sacr. t. i. p. 599, in monks. Whether the story of Nicephorus
Spicil. Solesmense. Their popularity through- Callistus be true or not, Fravitta stands dis-
out the entire East has ever been very great graced by this duplicity. Niceph. Callist.
(cf. Dr. Zirecek, Geschichte der Bulgaren). In xvi. 19, Patr. Gk. cxlvii. § 684. p. 152 ; Joann.
Burton's Unexplored Syria, App. ii., a church Zonar. Annul, xiv. iii. Patr. Gk. cxxxiv. § 53,
in their honour is noted at Huns, near Dam- p. 12 14 Liberat. Diac. Brev. xviii. Patr. Lat.
;

a,scus ; cf. also Melchior de Vogiie, Les Ixyiii. Felicis Pap. Ep. xii. and xiii. Patr. Lat.
;

Eglises de la terre sainte, p. 367. Iviii. p. 971 Evagr. iii. 23, Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi.
;

(2) Another set of Forty Martyrs in Persia, part ii. Theoph. Chroncgr. 114, Patr. Gk.
;

375, is commemorated on May 20 (Assemani, cviii. p. 324. Fw.M.s.]


Mart. Orient- i. 141). Among them were the Fructuosus (1), M., bp. of Tarragona in the
bishops Abdas and Ebed-Jesu. Ceillier, iii. 82, 3rd cent. The Acta of his martyrdom and of
336 ; Bas. Menol. his two deacons and fellow-sufferers, Eulogius
(3) Under Dec. 24 Forty Virgin Martyrs and Augurius, are the most ancient Spanish
under Decius at Antioch in Syria are noted in Acta, and marked by a realistic simplicity
Mart. Hieron., Adon., Usuard. [g.t.s.] which contrasts very favourably with many
Fravitta, 23rd bp. of Constantinople a.d. of the Acta of Diocletian's persecution. Pru-
489. Our chief authority is Nicephorus Callis- dentius made use of them in his hymn to the
tus, who relates that on the death of .\cacius, martyrs (Felix Tarraco Fructuose vestris, etc.,
the emperor Zeno placed on the altar of the Peristeph. vi.), and they are largely quoted
great church of Constantinople two sheets of by St. Augustine {Serm. 273, Migne, Patr.
paper. On one was written a prayer that Lat. xxxviii.). Under Valerian and Gallienus
God would send an angel to inscribe on the in the consulate of Aemilianus and Bassus
blank sheet the name of him whom He wished (a.d. 259), Aemilianus Praeses of Tarragona
to be the patriarch. A fast of 40 days with issued an edict against the Christians, com-
prayer was ordered. The church was given pelling all to sacrifice to the gods. Hearing
into the custody of a confidential eunuch, the this, bp. Fructuosus and the whole church
imperial chamberlain, and the imperial seal set of Tarragona gave themselves to unceasing
on the casket containing the papers. A pres- prayer. One night, after Fructuosus had
byter named Fravitta was in charge of the retired, four apparitores appeared at his gate
suburban church of St. Thecla. Fired with and summoned him and his deacons before the
ambition, he paid the eunuch large sums, and Praeses. This was Sunday, and they remained
promised him more, to write his name on the in prison till Friday, enjoying, however, some
blank sheet. At the end of the 40 days the intercourse with the brethren outside. Fruc-
casket was opened the name of Fravitta was tuosus even baptized a catechumen within the
;

found, and he was enthroned amid universal prison. Appearing before the Praeses, all
acclamations. Within 4 months he died, and three simply and steadfastly avowed their
the powerful eunuch was pressing his executors faith. Finally the Praeses asked Fructuosus,
for the promised gold. They revealed the " Art thou the bishop of the Christians ? "
odious tale to the emperor. The forger was He answered, " I am." The Praeses retorted,
turned out of all his employments and driven " Thou wast,'' and gave orders for them to be
from the city. Zeno, ashamed of his failure, scourged and burnt alive. On their way to
entrusted the election of the new patriarch to the amphitheatre Christians and heathens
the clergy. alike crowded around in sympathy. Some
Such is the account of Nicephorus Callistus. offered Fructuosus a cup of aromatic strength-
In the correspondence between Zeno, Fravitta, ening drink. He refused, saying, " It is not
and pope Felix on the appointment there is no yet time to break the fast " (it being Friday,
trace of this story. and ten o'clock the Friday fast lasting till
;

Fravitta at one and the same time wrote let- three). At the gate of the amphitheatre
ters to Peter Mongus asking for his communion, Fructuosus addressed the people. " Be of
and a synodal to pope Felix begging his sanc- good cheer a pastor shall not be wanting to
;

tion and co-operation. This document was you, nor shall the love and promise of God
carried to Rome by Catholic monks of Constan- fail you, either here or hereafter. For this
tinople who had always kept separate from which you behold is but the infirmity of an
Acacius and his friend Mongus. An accom- hour." After the flames were kindled, the
panying letter of Zeno showed great affection ligatures binding their hands were quickly
for Fravitta Zeno had only laboured for his burnt
;
; then Fructuosus, consuetudinis mentor,
appointment because he thought him worthy fell on his knees and so passed away.
and to restore peace and unity to the churches. This is the account of the Acta printed by
Pope Felix, delighted with the letters, had Tamayo in the Martyr. Hisp. (vol. i. Jan. 21)
Zeno's read aloud to the deputation and all from a i4th-cent. calendar in the library of the
the clergy of Rome, who expressed loud ap- cathedral of Astorga. It omits important points
proval. When the pope, however, wished the contained in the Bollandist Acta [A. A. S.S.
monks from Constantinople to undertake that Jan. ii.), which are the same as those printed
the names of Acacius and Mongus should be by Florez [Esp. Sag. xxv.). [m.a.w.]
FRUMENTIUS FULGENTIUS 373

Frumentius. [Edesius, 3.] tomemory the greater part of the poems of


Fulgentius (3), Fabius Claudius Gordianus, Homer and of the plays of Menander. He
bp. of Ruspe, b. 468, d. 533. His life was displayed great talent for business and much
mostly spent in the provinces of N.W. Africa versatility. His fine character recommended
ruled by the Vandal kings, Genseric, Hunneric, him to the court, and he was appointed fiscal
and Thrasimund, and he suffered from their procurator of the province. But after perus-
persecutions. The writings of Fulgentius ing Augustine's comment on Ps. xxxvi.
himself, a biographical memoir prefixed to his (xxxvii. Heb.), he was attracted by the " plea-
works and addressed to bp. Felicianus, his sures of a mind at peace with God, which
successor, supposed to be by Ferrandus, a fears nothing but sin." Hunneric having ban-
deacon of Carthage, and a treatise de Perse- ished the bishops to the neighbouring deserts,
cutione Vandalica, by Victor Vitensis in 487 young Fulgentius began to retire from society
(Migne, Patr. Lat. t. Iviii.), are the principal and devote himself to prayer and various
sources of information for the Vandal perse- austerities. One of these exiled bishops,
cution in Africa. Every refinement of cruelty Faustus, had formed a little monastery not
seems to have been visited upon the presby- far from Telepte, to which Fulgentius betook
ters, bishops, and virgins of the N. African himself. Owing to the persecution, and at
church during the reigns of Genseric and the advice of Faustus, Fulgentius removed to
Hunneric. At the first incursion of the another small monastery, under abbat Felix,
Vandals the whole country was desolated, between whom and Fulgentius sprang up an
houses of prayer and basilicas razed, neither enduring friendship. They divided the super-
age nor sex spared, the tombs of the martyrs intendence of the monastery between them,
rifled for treasure, bishops banished from their Fulgentius undertaking the duties of teacher.
sees, virgins basely used, and every effort made Troubles from an incursion of the Numidians
to alienate the people from the Catholic faith. compelled them to settle at Sicca Veneria or
At the commencement of Hunneric's reign Siccensis [Vita, c. ix.). An Arian presbyter
(Victor, lib. ii.) a gleam of sunshine cheered in the neighbourhood, alarmed at the influence
the church, during which the vacant see of exercised by the saintly Felix and Fulgentius,
Carthage was filled by Eugenius, whose laid a plot to rob and torture them. The
extraordinary virtues are duly recorded by little companj' again migrated to Ididi in
his biographers. His popularity excited the Mauritania, and here Fulgentius, reading the
rage and animosity of the conquerors, who Institutiones Cassiani, resolved to go to Egypt
forbade their own people to enter his church. and the Thebaid to follow a more severe rule
Those who 'disobeyed were submitted to of mortification. At Syracuse he was kindly
torture ; some were blinded, and many died received by bp. Eulalius, who discouraged his
of the inhuman treatment. Women were going to the Thebaid, as it was separated by a
scalped, stripped, and paraded through the " perfidious heresy and schism from the com-
streets. Victor says, " We knew many of munion of St. Peter," i.e. the Monophysite
these." Nor did the orthodox alone suffer. doctrine and the schism to which that led
Jocundus, the Arian patriarch, was burned in the Egyptian church after the council of
alive, and Manicheans were hunted down like Chalcedon, a.d. 451. The advice was followed,
wild beasts. At the end of his 2nd year and for some months he resided near Syracuse.
Hunneric refused all position in the court or In 500 he visited Rome, was present at the
executive to any but Arians, and banished to gorgeous reception given to Theodoric, and
Sardinia all who refused to conform ; heavy that year returned to Africa. He received
pecuniary fines were imposed whenever a from Sylvester, primarius of Byzacene, a site
bishop was ordained ; many Christian women for a spacious monastery which was at once
died under inhuman cruelties, and many were crowded thence he retired to a lonely island,
;

crippled for life. In 486 the bishops and priests which lacked wood, drinkable water, and access
were exiled into the desert, and in his 8th year to the mainland. Here he occupied himself
Hunneric issued an edict, still preserved [ib. with manual toil and spiritual exercises.
iii.), summoning the Homoousians to renounce Felix, having discovered his retreat, persuaded
their faith, fixing a date for their submission Faustus to ordain Fulgentius a presbyter, and,
and for their churches to be destroyed, books under pain of excommunication, to compel a
burned, and pastors banished. The conse- return to his monastery. This was shortly
quences of this edict are detailed with hor- after the death of Hunneric and accession
rible circumstantiality by Victor, and even of Thrasimund, who, though an Arian, was
Gibbon considers them inhumanly severe. The more liberal than his predecessors (Gibbon,
cruelties of the Diocletian persecution were Smith's ed. vol. iv. c. 37). The little seaport of
equalled, if not surpassed, by these efforts to Ruspe, on a projecting spur of the coast near
extirpate the Homoousian faith. Gordian, the Syrtis Parva, had remained without a
the grandfather of Fulgentius, a senator of bishop, and desired Fulgentius, who was taken
Carthage, was exiled by Genseric. His two by force from his cell to Victor the primate
sons returned home during an interval of of Byzacene and consecrated as its bishop in
grace to find their property in the hands of 508, when 40 years old. He made no change
Arian priests. Not being allowed to remain in his costume or daily regimen. His first
at Carthage, they settled at Telepte in the demand from his people was a site for a monas-
province of Byzacene. One of them, Claudius, tery, and his old friend Felix was summoned
married Maria Anna, a Christian lady, who to preside over it. But Thrasimund dismissed
gave birth in 468 to Fulgentius. His mother Fulgentius and other newly elected bishops
was careful that he should studv the Greek to Sardinia. Here, in the name of the 60
language, and would not allow him to read exiles, he wrote important letters on questions
Roman literature until he had committed of theological and ecclesiastical importance.
;

374 FULGENTIUS FULGENTIUS


His literary faculty, knowledge of Scripture, the same. " Sicut inseparabilis est unitate
and repute as a theologian, probably induced naturae sic inconfusibilis permanet proprietate
Thrasimund to summon him to Carthage, and personae" (lib. iii. c. 3). (Cf. " unus omnino
ten objections to the Catholic faith were pre- non confusione substantiae sed unitate per-
;

sented to him. His reply was his earliest sonae," of the Athanasian Creed.) Yet though
treatise, viz. One Book against the Artans, Ten Christ emptied Himself of His glory. He was
A nswers to Ten Objections. The third objection full of grace and truth. The two natures were
resembles a common argument of the earlier united, not confused, in Christ. But as there
Arians, viz. that Prov. viii. 22, John xvi. 29, was taken up into His one personality the
Ps. ii. 7, and other passages imply that the reasonable soul and flesh of man, not a human
Son is " created," " generated in time," and personality, but human nature. He could weep
therefore not of the same substance with the at the grave of Lazarus and die upon the
Father, to which Fulgentius replied that Cross. Chap. 20 shews conclusively that Ful-
they all refer to the Incarnation, and not to gentius must have read as the text of Heb.
the essence of the Son of God. He used the ii. 9, X'^r'is BeoO rather than X^P""' OeoO, as he
argument of Athanasius, which makes the lays repeated emphasis on the sine Deo. The
customary worship of the Son of God verge author of the Vita assures us that Thrasimund
either on Polytheism or Sabellianism if we do secured the assistance of an Arian bishop, Pinta,
not at the same time recognize the consub- to reply to these three books, and that Ful-
stantiality of the Son. To deny, said Fulgen- gentius rejoined. The existing work entitled
tius, the Catholic position, produces the Pro Fide Catholica adv. Pintam Episcopum
dilemma that the Son of God was either from Arianum, liber unus (0pp. Migne's ed. pp.
something or from nothing. To suppose that 708-720) cannot be the work of Fulgentius.
He was made " out of nothing " reduces Him The indignation of the Arian party at Carthage
to the rank of a creature while to suppose
; led to what is called his second exile. In the
that He was made " from something," in dead of night Fulgentius was hurried on board
essence different from God, involves a co- a vessel bound for Sardinia. On reaching
eternal Being, and some form of Manichean Calaris (Cagliari) in Sardinia, he was received
dualism. Fulgentius laid the greatest empha- by the exiles with great enthusiasm and rever-
sis on the unity of God's essence, and assumed, ence. Here he remained until the king died
as a point not in dispute, that Christ was the in 523, and displayed extraordinary energy in
object of Divine worship. This throws some literary, polemical, and monastic work. With
"
light upon the later Arianism. The reply was of Brumasius,
the assistance the "
antistes
not considered satisfactory by Thrasimund, he built another monastery, where
of the city,
who sent another group of objections, which more than 40 monks lived under a strict
were to be read to Fulgentius. No copy was rule of community of property. The equity,
to be left with him, but he was expected benevolence, and self-abnegation of these
to return categorical answers a statement
: coenobites are extolled in high terms, and
vouched for by the opening chapters of the Fulgentius is especially commended for his
ad Trasimundum Regem Vandalorum Libri sweetness and gentleness to the youngest and
tres (cf. Schroeckh, Christliche Kirchenge- weakest, which was never disturbed except
schichte, xviii. 108). Bk. i. treats " of the when bound by his office and vows to act with
Mystery of the Mediator, Christ, having two severity towards insubordination or sin.
natures in one person " ; bk. ii. " of the Symmachus, bp. of Rome, wrote a letter of
Immensity of the Divinity of the Son of God " congratulation to these valiant champions of
;

bk. iii. " of the Sacrament of the Lord's Christ {.inast. in Symmacho, Baron, ann. 504).
Passion." In bk. i. Fulgentius displays great During this period the majority of his extant
familiarity with Scripture, and endeavours to letters were penned, for the most part in
establish the eternal generation of the Logos, answer to difficult theological questions, and
and the birth in time of the Christ, when the then also Fulgentius revealed his strong agree-
Logos took flesh, and endeavours to shew that ment with Augustine on predestination, grace,
by " flesh " is meant the whole of humanity, and remission of sin, at a time when these
body and reasonable soul, just as occasionally doctrines were being called in question by the
by " soul " is denoted not only reasonable soul semi- Pelagians of S. Gaul and N. Africa. Cf.
but body as well. In bk. i. he shews that the Neander, General Church History, Clark's
whole of humanity needed redemption, and trans, vol. iv. 417 ff. Shedd, Hist, of
;

was taken into union with the Eternal Word ; Christian Doctrine, vol. ii. 104 ff. Wiggers,
;

in bk. ii. that nothing less than Deity in His A ugustinismus und Pelagianismus, II. Theil,
supreme wisdom and power could effect the 369-393 Schroeckh, xviii.
;

redemption. In many ways he argues the The most extended of these dissertations is
immensity of the Son and of the Spirit of God. ad Monimum, libri tres. I. De duplice prae-
In bk. iii. he opposes strongly not only destinatione Dei. II. Complectens tres quaes-
Patripassianism, but all theopathia, GfOTracrxt- tiones. III. De vera expositione illius dicti :
TiiTfil)s and the supposition that the Deity of et verbum erat apiid Deunt. Monimus was an
Christ felt substantialiter the sorrows of the intimate friend of Fulgentius, and, on perusing
Cross. The dyophysite position is urged with Augustine's de Perfectione Jv.stitiae Hominis,
remarkable earnestness, and held to be com- had thought that that Father taught pre-
pletely compatible with the unity of the person destination to sin as well as to virtue.
of Christ. The personality of the Christ the Fulgentius assured Monimus that God does
Son of God is distinguished from the person- not predestinate men to sin, but only to the
ality of the Father, with an almost semi-Arian punishment merited by sin, quoting Ezk. xviii.
force, while he holds that the nature and sub- 30. " Sin," said he, " is not in Him, so sin is
stance of the Father and the Son are one and not from Him. That which is not His work
FULGENTIUS FULGENTIUS 375
cannot be His predestination." No constraint entire deference to Felix, took the position of
of the will is meant by predestination, but the the humblest neophyte, and only suggested
disposition of Divine grace by which God more vigorous work for the clerics, more fre-
pardons one, though He may punish another, quent fasting for the monks. In 524 a council
gives grace to one who is unworthy of it, even was held at Juncensis, apparently to enforce
if He find another worthy of His anger. Bk. a more rigid attention to the canons. Fulgen-
ii. is occupied with Arian questions as to the tius was called to preside. His precedence
Trinity, and the Divinity of the Holy Spirit. was disputed by a bishop called Quodvultdeus,
The rigidity of his ecclesiastical theory is here but confirmed by his brethren. After the
conspicuous. The charity, the sacrifices, the council, Fulgentius besought out of charity
services of heretics are of no avail, since they that his brethren would transfer this nominal
are separated from the Catholic Church. Bk. precedence to his rival, thus heaping on his
iii. replies to the Arian interpretation of head coals of fire. The primate of Carthage,
" apud Deum " in John i. i ; to their theory Boniface, sought the presence of Fulgentius at
that if it had been said " verbum est in Deo," the dedication of a new church, and wept tears
we might have thence deduced the identity of joy under his powerful discourse. During
of the two natures, that " apud " implies this period Fulgentius wrote his great work
separation and dissimilarity. His argument- against Fabianus, fragments only of which
um ad hominem is very ingenious the exe-
; remain. They discuss a variety of interesting
getical argument which follows is feeble. problems bearing on the Divinity of the
During this period Fulgentius wrote the Holy Spirit and other elements of Trini-
Liber ad Donatum de Fide Orthodoxa et Diversis tarian doctrine. The Sermones which remain,
Erroribus Haereticorum (Ep. viii. Migne), else- by their flowing eloquence, antithetic style
where described as a letter to the Cartha- and tender sensibility, attest the power of
ginians. His object was succinctly to char- Fulgentius. He powerfully discriminates be-
acterize Sabellian, Arian, Macedonian, and tween the Son and the Trinity, and clearly
Manichean heresy ;he condemns Photinus, implies the double procession of the Holy
and the errors of Eutyches and Nestorius by Spirit. He claims that the Father had created
name, declaring that the true doctrine of the everything by the Son. Men are only wound-
church was to assert the two natures, as ed by the poison and malice of creatures by
against Eutyches, and to repudiate the two reason of their sins. The mightiest beings are
persons, against Nestorius. During his resi- submitted to man. There is no evil in nature.
dence in Sardinia an important letter was He draws weighty distinctions between the
written to Euthymius, de Remissione Pecca- sins of the just and the wicked.
torum (§ xiv. Ceillier, p. 527, Migne). The Ferrandus the deacon asked whether he
question was asked by Euthymius, a devout might count upon the salvation of an Ethio-
laic, whether remission of sins was possible pian, who had come as a catechumen eagerly
after death. After a broad description of desiring baptism, but had died at the moment
what remission of sin is, Fulgentius declares of baptism. Fulgentius starts with the thesis
the human conditions to be " faith," " good that faith is the indispensable condition of
works," and " time," but it can only be salvation, baptism or no baptism. Heretics
secured in the Catholic church, which has and enemies of the church will not be saved
power to remit all sin except the sin against by baptism. The Ethiopian had given evid-
the Holy Ghost, which he declares to be " final ence of faith, and was baptized, though then
impenitence." The utmost stress is laid upon unconscious, both conditions being indispens-
the irreversible condition of the soul at death. able to salvation. He is thereifore saved.
All merits are attributed to Divine grace But he reprobates baptism of the really dead,
(Wiggers, op. cit. p. 382). for baptism removes the stain and curse of
The 3 books, de Veritate Praedestinationts original sin, the seat of which is the soul. If
et Gratia Dei (Migne, p. 604), are addressed to the soul is severed from the body, baptism is
John and Venerius, to whom other letters were worthless. He decides that the benefits of
also sent during the 2nd exile (Ep. xv. Ceillier, the Eucharist are contained in baptism, and
§ x.) on the doctrines of Faustus of Rhegium hence, he says, for many centuries past,
(de Riez, Riji, sometimes Galliarum). infants are not fed with the Eucharist after
Fulgentius lays down, in opposition to their baptism.
Faustus, that grace can neither be known nor In another correspondence Fulgentius
appreciated until given ; that so long as man argues that the passion was Christ's qua His
is without it, he resists it by word or deed. whole person, but qua nature it was the
Faustus had spoken of an imperishable grain experience of His flesh only. His soul and
of good in every man which is nourished by body were separated at death. His soul went
grace. Free will is this spark of heavenly fire, to Hades, His body to the grave, but His
not obliterated by the fall. Fulgentius urged Divine nature at that very moment filled all
that there may be free will, but not free will space and time, together with the Father and
to that which is good. the Holy Spirit.
In 523 Thrasimund died, and his successor, Many of the same arguments are repeated
Hilderic, allowed the return of the Catholic in the Letter Addressed to the Monks of Scythia,
bishops, and the election of new ones in the who accepted all the decisions of Chalcedon,
churches still vacant. The bishops were anathematized Pelagius, Julian, and even
received at Carthage with transports of joy, Faustus, and asked for further light. The
and none with greater enthusiasm than Ful- reply of Fulgentius and 15 other bishops
gentius, who was welcomed with triumphal consists of 67 chapters. The points of chief
arches, lamps, torches, and banners. On interest are that Fulgentius denied that the
arriving at Ruspe, be yiejded in the monastery Virgin was conceived immaculate, and that
376 FULGENTIUS FERRANDUS GALERIUS
when speaking of the eternal generation of the (the Capttula Tria), which condemned cer-
Son, he used the bold expression, "ex utero tain passages from Theodoret, Theodore of
Patris." He laid the strongest emphasis on Mopsuestia, and Ibas of Edessa. Ferrandus
the Monergistic hypothesis of regeneration, was backed by the vehemently orthodox and
and weakened the universalism of God's love dyophysite spirit of the N. African church, and
by declaring that " all " does not mean " all in a letter (546) to Anatolius and Pelagius, two
men," but "all kinds of men." deacons of the Roman church, whom Vigilius
While pursuing his literary work with such instructed to communicate with him, declared
industry, Fulgentius retired from his monas- against the reception of the edict of Justinian.
tery at Ruspe to another on the island of The most complete ed. of his works is by
Circina, and redoubled his self-mortifications. Chiffletius (Dijon, 1649). The two letters to
Here his health gave way. When told that a Fulgentius of Ruspe are in Sirmond's and
bath was absolutely necessary to prolong his Migne's edd. of Fulgentii 0pp. [h.r.r.]
life, he obstinately refused to break his rule. Fundanus (1) Minucius, proconsul of Asia
He died in Jan. 533, in his 65th year and the in the reign of Hadrian. He received the
25 th of his episcopate, and Felicianus was imperial instructions applied for by his pre-
elected his successor the same day. decessor Granianus as to how Christians were
The most complete ed. of his works wasissued to be dealt with (Justin. Mart. Apol. i. § 69 ;
in Paris (i68/)) by L. Mangeant. The whole, Eus. H. E. iv. 9). [Hadrianus (1).] This
with manv letters to which he replied, is in rescript seems to shew that a Christian was
Migne, Pair. Lai. t. Ixv. ;Schroeckh, Kirchen- not to be tried merely for being a Christian,
gescMchte, xvii. xviii. 108 ff. [h.r.r.] but only for some definite breach of the law.
Fulgentius (4) Ferrandus, a disciple and As this might be due to principles, Christianity-
companion of Fulgentius of Ruspe (3) ;shar- would remain still pimishable, but only ia
ing his exile to Sardinia during the persecution overt act. [ch.]
by the Arian kings of the Vandals. Ferrandus
received the hospitality of St. Saturninus at
Cagliari, and on the death of Thrasimund,
G
A.D. 523, returned to Carthage, where he be- Galenus, Claudius, physician, born a.d. 130
came a deacon. In all probability he was the at Pergamus, flourished chiefly at Rome under
author of the Vita prefixed to the works of the Antonines, and died in 200 or 201. For a
Fulgentius of Ruspe, and dedicated to Felici- full account see D. of G. and R. Biogr. He
anus. Hoffmann, Lex. s.n. Herzog, Encycl.
; belongs to church history only because of a
art. by Wagenmann ; Petrus Pithaeus, in few incidental words referring to Christianity
preface Lectori, prefixed to Breviatio Canonum that occur in his voluminous writings. Thus
Ferrandi, Cod. Canonum, p. 303. in his de Pulsuum Differentiis (lib. iii. cap. 3,
Two letters of Ferrandus to Fulgentius are sub. fin. in 0pp. t. viii. p. 657, ed. Kiihn) he
extant (Migne, Patr. Ixv. pp. 378-435), with writes : " It is easier to convince the disciples
the lengthy and careful replies of the latter. of Moses and Christ than physicians and
For the former see Fulgentius (3). The philosophers who are addicted to particular
second asked concerning :
i. —
The Separa- sects" and (lib. ii. cap. 4, p. 579) he condemns
;

bility of the Persons of the Trinity. 2. the method of Archigenes, who requires his
Whether the Divinity of the Christ suffered dicta to be received absolutely and without
on the cross, or the Divine Person suffered demonstration, " as though we were come to
only in the flesh. The fifth question con- the school of Moses and of Christ." In the
cerned the double gift of the cup to the de Renum Affectuum Dignotione (Kiihn, t.
apostles, as mentioned in St. Luke's gospel. xix.) there
are other references, but that
Ferrandus was often appealed to for his own treatise is spurious. An Arabic writer has
theological judgment. His collected writings preserved a fragment of Galen's lost work,
(Biblioth. Patr. Chiffletius, 1649) preserve one de Republicd Platonis, which reads " : We
entitled de Duabus in Christo naturis, and an know that the people called Christians have
Epistola Anatolio de quaestione an aliquis ex founded a religion in parables and miracles.
Trinitate passus est. He is also the author of In moral training we see them in nowise in-
a Breviatio canonum ecclesiasticorum (Codex ferior to philosophers they practise celibacy,
;

Canonum, F. Pithaeus, and Miscellanea Eccle- as do many of their women in diet they are
;

siastica, Petrus Pithaeus, pp. 303 ff.), a collec- abstemious, in fastings and prayers assiduous ;
tion and digest of 232 canons of the earliest they injure no one. In the practice of virtue
councils, Nicaea, Laodicea, Sardica, Constanti- they surpass philosophers in probity, in
;

nople, Carthage, etc., chiefly appertaining to continence, in the genuine performance of


the election, ordination, and character of
bishops, presbyters, and deacons
miracles (vera miraculorum patratione does —
the feasts
; he mean the Scripture miracles, on which their
of the church ;
the duties of virgins, cate- religion was based ?) they infinitely excel
chumens, etc. It is thought to have been them " (Casiri, Biblioth. Arabico-Hispana, vol.
compiled during the reign of Anastasius i.p. 253). For apologetic remarks on Galen's
(d. 518). Ferrandus appears to have had his testimony see Lardner's Credibility (Works,
knowledge of the Greek councils through a vol. vii. p. 300, ed. 1838). [ch.]
translation and digest of such canons as had GaleriUS, empexor. (Gains Galerius Valerius
been previously in use in Spain. The mention Maximianus on his coinage called Maximus;

of later synods and writings has led others in some Acts of martyrs, that having appar-
to believe that the Breviatio was compiled c. ently been his name until Diocletian changed
547. [Canon Law, D. C. A.] Ferrandus took it see Lact. Mort. 18
; nicknamed Armen-
;

a not unimportant part in the violent dis- tarius from his original occupation.) He was
cussions produced by the edict of Justinian I. a native of New Da,cia, on the S. oi, the
.

GALERIUS GALERIUS 377

Danube. His mother Romula had fled thither and the emperor signed his second edict,
for refuge from the predatory Carpi, who ordering the incarceration of the entire clergy,
pillaged her own country on the N. side (Lact. though even now there was to be no bloodshed.
Mort. 9 Aur. Vict. Epit. xl. 17). As a youth
;
In putting these edicts into execution
he was a neatherd, but soon joined the army Galerius shews occasional signs of a reluctant
under Aurelian and Probus. Without intention to adhere to the principles of Dio-
education or virtues, he raised himself by cletian's legislation. His return to his own
undoubted military gifts, until he was selected province in 304 was marked by a sudden crowd
(together with Constantius) by Diocletian to of martyrdoms where the edicts had before
fill the office of Caesar of the East in Diocle- not even been published, but his conduct in
tian's famous scheme for the reorganization the case of St. Romanus shews that, when
of the empire, a.d. 292. He married Valeria, directly appealed to, he felt bound to forbid
the Christian daughter of Diocletian. There the capital punishment of even obstreperous
were no children of the marriage, which was Christians (Eus. Mart. Pal. ii.). The time
anything but happy, but the gentle Valeria was coming, however, when Galerius was to
adopted her husband's bastard son Candidian. have more liberty of action. In 304, probably
Galerius had none of the gifts of a ruler, nor during a total collapse of Diocletian's health,
any appreciation of his father-in-law's policy, the so-called Fourth Edict w.s issued by
but his authority with the army made him a Maximian, no doubt in conjunction with
useful coadjutor. Five years after his call to Galerius, making death the penalty of Chris-
the Caesarship (a.d. 297) he was sent to con- tianity. Diocletian began to recover in March
duct the chief war of the reign of Diocletian, 305, and abandoned his long-held intention
the last which ever gave the Capitol a triumph, of abdicating on May i in that year, not
against Narses, king of Persia. After an un- improbably because of the commotion which
successful first campaign, he utterly routed had been caused by the Fourth Edict. Gal-
Narses, and forced him to purchase peace at erius, who had long coveted the promised
the cost of five provinces near the source of diadem, would brook no more delay, and
the Tigris. with much violence compelled the enfeebled
The year 303 brought Galerius prominently Augustus to retire, leaving himself nominally
into contact with the church. He had con- second to Constantius, whose death in July
ceived a hatred for the Christians, originating 306 left Galerius supreme.
(so far as we can see) almost whollv in his Political troubles which followed did not
fanatical superstition and aversion to Chris- divert Galerius from persecution. On Mar
tian morality. His mother was a noted 31, 308, he issued, in conjunction with his
votaress of the Phrygian orgies, and plied her nephew Maximin, a bloody edict against the
son continually with entreaties to demolish Manicheans (Cod. Greg. ed. Hanel, lib. xiv.
Christianity. She was supported by the p. 44*). For the date see the present writer's
magician and so-called Platonist Theo- essay on The Persecution of Diocletian, p. 279.
TECNUS (Cedr. vol. i. p. 47, ed. Bonn), who had The same year saw an order to substitute
also acquired an ascendancy over Galerius. mutilation for death in cases of Christianity ;

The winter of 302-303 was spent by Galerius as Eusebius says {Mart. Pal. ix ), " The con-
at Nicomedia, where he used every effort to flagration subsided, as if quenched with the
compel the reluctant Diocletian to annul the streams of sacred blood." But the relaxation
legislation of Gallienus, to break the forty was only for a few months. The autumn of
years' amity between the empire and the 308 saw a new edict issued, which began a
church, and to crush Christianity. Step by perfect reign of terror for two full years, the
step he gained his points, until Diocletian most prolific in bloodshed of any in the history
consented to proscribe the open profession of of Roman persecutions and the vast major-
;

Christianity and to take all measures to sup- ity of persons who in the East (for the perse-
press it, short of bloodshed (Lact. Mort. 11, cution in the West had ceased with the
" rem sine sanguine transigi "). The first accession of Constantine and usurpation of
edict of Diocletian, however, was not strong Maxentius) are celebrated as " martyrs under
enough to content Galerius. The demolition Diocletian " really suffered between 308 and
of buildings which proclaimed the power of the 311. This part of the persecution bears
church, the prohibition of synaxis, the burning marks, however, of the influence of Maximin
of the books used in the Christian ritual, the Daza rather than of Galerius. Towards the
civic, social, and military degradation of close of 310 Galerius was seized with an incur
Christians, were too slow ways of abolishing able malady, partially caused by his vicious
it. His one desire was to remove Diocletian's life. This gradually developed into the
expressive clause, that "no blood was to be frightful disease vulgarly known as being
shed in the transaction." A fire broke out " eaten of worms." The fact rests not only
in the part of the palace where Diocletian on the authority of the church historians (Eus.
lived. Lactantius, then resident at Nico- H. E. viii., xvi. 3 ff. Lact. Mort. 33), but
;

media, asserts that it was set alight by also upon that of the pagan Aurelius Victor
Galerius, whose object was to persuade the (Epit. xl. 4) and the fragment known as
Augustus that his trusty Christian chamber- Anonymous Valesii. Galerius, face to face
lains were conspiring against him ; but on with so awful a death, thought (apparently)
application of torture to the whole household, that a compromise might be effected with the
they were acquitted. A fortnight later an- God of the Christians, whom he undoubtedly
other occurred, and Galerius (who, ostensibly recognized as an active and hostile power.
to escape assassination, perhaps really to avoid From his dying-bed was issued his famous
discovery, immediately departed) convinced Edict of Toleration, bearing the signatures also
Diocletian of the existence of a Christian plot, of Constantine and of Licinius, which virtually
; —

378 GALLA PLACIDIA GALLIENUS


put an end to the " Persecution of Diocletian." Africa was lost (Procop. Bell. Vandal, i. 4 ;

This most extraordinary document may be Augustine, Ep. 220 Gibbon, c. xxxiii.).
;

read in full in Eus. H. E. viii. 17, and Lact. In 449 Placidia was at Rome with Valen-
Mort. 34. The origin of the persecution is tinian. The legates of Leo had just returned
ascribed to the fact that the Christians had from the Robber Council of Ephesus. Leo
wilfully departed from the " institutions of the bitterly bewailed the doings of that assembly
ancients which had peradventure been first set to Placidia, who immediately wrote to Theo-
on foot by their own forefathers," and had dosius and his sister Pulcheria, intreating them
formed schismatical assemblies on their own to interfere in defence of the faith of their
private judgment. Primitive Christianity is ancestors and to procure the restoration of
here meant by the phrase institutaveterum, and Flavian, the deposed bp. of Constantinople
the edicts were asserted to have had no object (Cone. Chalced. pt. i. Ep. 26, 28, 30 ; Labbe,
but to bring the Christians back to it. But iv. 53, 55, 58). She died soon afterwards at
Galerius was now determined, under certain Rome, and was buried at Ravenna (Idatius,
unspecified conditions, to allow Christianity Chr. s.a. Gibbon, u.s.).
; [t.w.d.]
once more and to permit the building of Gallienus, P. LiciniUS, emperor, son of
churches. In return, the Christians are told to Valerian, appointed by the senate coadjutor
pray to their God for the recovery of Galerius. to his father very shortly after Valerian's suc-
Thus did the dying persecutor try to pose cession in Aug. 253. In 260 his father's
as a kind reformer, and to lead the God of the captivity in Persia left him politically irre-
Christians to remit his temporal punishment. sponsible.
" The Unknown God to Whom he had at last One great act brings him into church history.
betaken himself gave no answer to his insolent On his father's fall, he was legally bound to
and tardy invocation " (De Broglie, i. 207). put every clergyman to death wherever found,
The edict was posted at Nicomedia on April 30 and to deal in almost as summary a fashion
he died on May 5 or 13, 311. [a.j.m.] with all other Christians. [Valerian.] Gal-
Galla (5) Plaoidia, daughter of Theodosius lienus had had three years' experience of the
I., by his second wife Galla. When in 410 difficulty and wearisomeness of this task.
Rome was captured by Alaric, Placidia was The " Thirty Tyrants," moreover, were foes
taken prisoner, but was treated with great formidable enough to attract what little
respect (Olympiod. ap. Phot. Biblioth. Ixxx. ;
attention could be spared from pleasure.
Zos. Hist. vi. 12), and in Jan. 414, at Narbona Accordingly, in 261 he issued a public edict,
in Gaul, married Ataulphus, who had suc- by which Christianity was for the first time
ceeded his uncle Alaric. After the death of put on a clearly legal footing as a religio licita.
Ataulphus, Placidia returned to Italy, a.d. 416, This edict is the most marked epoch in the
and dwelt with her paternal uncle Honorius, history of the church's relation to the state
at Ravenna. In Jan. 417 she married Constan- since the rescript of Trajan to Pliny, which had
tius. By him she had two children, Valentinian made Christianity distinctly a religio illicita.
and Honoria (Olympiod. u.s.) Her influence The words in which Eusebius describes the
over Constantius was soon shewn in his active edict (the text of which is lost) imply no more
persecution of the Pelagians (Prosp. Chron. s.a. than that actual persecution was stopped
418), when, in Feb. 421, Honorius admitted (H. E. vii. 13), which might have been done
Constantius to a share of the empire. On without a legal recognition of Christianity ;

Sept. II, 421, Constantius died. Placidia again but Eusebius has preserved a copy of the
took up her abode with Honorius at Ravenna, encyclical rescript which the emperor ad-
but their mutual affection being replaced by dressed to the Christian bishops of the Egyp-
bitter hate, which occasioned serious disturb- tian province, which shews that the position of
ances in the city, she and her children were " the bishops " is perfectly recognized by the
sent to Theodosius II. at Constantinople pagan government. The rescript informs the
(Olympiod. u.s.). On the death of Honorius in bishops that orders have been issued to the
Aug. 423, Theodosius declared for Valentinian. pagan officials to evacuate the consecrated
Valentinian being but a child, the author- places the bishops' copies of the rescript
;

ity of Placidia was now supreme, and among will serve as a warrant against all interference
her first acts was the issue of three edicts in in reoccupying. Thus formally, universally,
rapid succession for the banishment of all and deliberately was done what Alexander
" Manicheans, heretics, and schismatics, and Severus had done in an isolated case in a freak
everysect opposed to the Catholic faith" (Cod. of generosity t.e. the right of the Corpus
Theod. XVI. v. 62, July 17 ib. 63, Aug. 4
; ;
Christianorum to hold property was fully
ib. 64, Aug. 6, 425, all dated from Aquileia), recognized. If Christianity had not been
meaning especially the adherents of the anti- explicitly made a religio licita, this would have
pope Eulalius, who were still numerous in been impossible. The great proof, however,
Rome. These edicts were soon followed by an- of the footing gained by the church through
other of great severity, directed against apos- Gallienus's edict lies in the action of his suc-
tates (Cod. Theod. XVI. vii. 8, Apr. 7, 426). cessor Aurelian in the matter of Paul of
In 427 the machinations of Aetius put Samosata. Though Aurelian's bigoted sun-
Placidia in conflict with her tried friend Boni- worship and hatred of the church were well
face, count of Africa, who, in despair, ap- known, and his death alone prevented a great
pealed for help to the Vandals, and Africa rupture, the Catholics were so secure of their
was overrun by their forces. Placidia ex- legal position as actually to appeal to the
plained matters to Boniface, and urged him emperor in person to decide their dispute ;

to do his best to repair the injury which the and Aurelian, as the law then stood, not only
empire had sustained. But it was too late ;
recognized the right of the church to hold
the Vandals were masters of the country, and property, but also to decide infernal disputes
GALLUS CAESAR GAUDENTIUS 379

(though they concerned property) according Gain, compiled by Walafrid Strabo, abbat of
to her own methods. [a.j.m.] Reichenau (a.d. 842-849), and pub. by Surius
Gallus (1) Caesar, son of Juhus Constantius iVitae Sanct. Oct. 16, t. iv. 252 seq., Colon.
(youngest brother of Constantine the Great) 1617), by Mabillon (Acta SS. O.S.B. ii. 215
and his first wife Galla born a.d. 325 at seq.), and Migne (Patr. Lat. cxiii. 975 seq.).
;

Massa Veternensis near Siena in Tuscany Another Vita S. Galii, ex MS. St. Gall. 553,
(Amm. xiv. 11, 27). In the general massacre is published bv Portz {Mon. Germ. Hist. ii.
of the younger branches of the imperial family 189). The original documents are to be found
on the death of Constantine in 337, two young in Wartmann's Nerkundenbuch der Abtei St.

brothers were alone preserved Gallus who Gallen, vols, i.-iii. 1865-1882.
was ill of a sickness which seemed likely to be He undoubtedly was of Irish birth, and his
mortal, and Julian a child of seven. original name was Cellach, Calech, or Caillech.
Both were brought up as Christians, and Trained Bangor, in the famous school of St.
at
entered with apparent zeal into the externals Comgall, he accompanied Columbanus into
of the Christian life. In 350 Gallus received Gaul, A.D. 585, and in his exile from Luxeuil
the dignity of Caesar, which the childless along the Rhine into Switzerland, and, ap-
Constantius bestowed upon him on succeed- parently from his aptness at learning the
ing to the sole government of the empire by languages, proved a most useful assistant
the death of his brother Constans. In the in preaching to the Suevi, Helvetii, and
West Constantius was distracted by the neighbouring tribes. [Columbanus.] When
usurpation of Magnentius in Gaul, while in Columbanus in 612 left Switzerland to escape
the East the Persians were a perpetual source the persecution of the Burgundian court,
of alarm. Gallus had to make a solemn Gallus was detained at Bregenz by a fever, but
oath upon the Gospels not to undertake any- as soon as he could, returned to his friend the
thing against the rights of his cousin, who priest Willimar, at Arbona on the S. shore of
similarly pledged himself to Gallus. He the Lake of Constance, and devoted his re-
received at the same time the strong-minded maining years to the conversion of the wild
and unfeminine Constantina as his wife, and tribes inhabiting this eastern frontier of
Lucilianus, the count of the East, as his Austrasia. On the banks of the Steinaha or
general (Zos. 2, 45. Philost. iv. i refers to Steinach he built his cell and oratory, in the
the oath between Constantius and Gallus; cf. midst of a thick forest. Twelve others
Chron. Pasch. p. 540 ;Zonaras, xiii. 8). accompanied him. His collection of rude
The records of his short reign at Antioch huts determined the site of the town and
come to us chiefly from Ammianus (lib. xiv.). monastery of St. Gall. When the see of
They are almost entirely unfavourable to him. Constance became vacant in 616, the epis-
His defence of the frontier against the Per- copate was urgently pressed upon him, and
sians was indeed successful (Zos. 3, i Philost.
; again in 625, but he declined, and was allowed
iii. 28, speaks strongly on this point), but to nominate his deacon John, a native of the
his internal policy was disastrous. place. The sermon he preached at John's
Besides the report of his harsh and open —
consecration is extant in Latin a wonderful
misgovernment, accounts of secret treason specimen of Irish erudition, simple yet full of
meditated by him were conveyed to Constan- vigour, learned and devout, giving an abstract
tius. The emperor, with his usual craft, sent of the history of God's dealings from the
an affectionate letter and desired his presence, creation, of the fall and redemption, of the
as he wished to consult him on urgent public mission of the apostles and calling of the Gen-
business (Amm. xiv. 11, i). When he arrived tiles, and ending with a powerful appeal to
at Petovio in Noricum, he was seized by the Christian faith and life, which gives some
count Barbatio, deprived of his imperial idea of the state of the corrupt and barbarous
insignia, and conveyed, with many protesta- society he was seeking to leaven. Beyond
tions that his life was safe, to Flanon in Dal- these few incidents we know little. He died
matia, where he was closely guarded. The Oct. 16, 645 or 646, at Arbona, aged 95, but
all-powerful eunuch Eusebius was then sent some propose an earlier date.
to interrogate him upon his various crimes. The oratory of St. Gall gave rise to one of
Gallus did not deny them, but blamed his the most celebrated monasteries of the middle
wife. Constantius ordered his execution, ages, and its library to this day stands un-
which took place towards the close of 354. rivalled in the wealth and variety of its ancient
His instruction had been Arian under the manuscripts. (For an account of the school
direction of Constantius, and he seems to have of St. Gall and its cultivation of the fine arts,
been influenced not a little by the Anomoean see Hist. lit. de la France, iv. 243-246.) [j-c]
Aetius. This notorious man had been sent Gaudentius, bp. of Brescia (Brixia), suc-
to him to be put to death as a heretic. Gallus cessor of Philaster (Philastrius) c. a.d. 387.
spared him on the intercession of Leontius, Of the early life of Gaudentius nothing is
bp. of Antioch, and became very friendly with known for certain. He was probably a native
him. According to Philostorgius, he made of Brescia at any rate, he was well known
;

him his religious instructor, and attempted there in his youth. From the language which
by his means to recall J ulian to the faith, when he uses in reference to his predecessor he
he heard that he was wavering (Philost. H. E. appears to have been intimately acquainted
iii. 27). There is no reason to doubt that the with him (though Tillemont is wrong in his
young Caesar was a zealous Christian after interpretation of the words " ego minima
. . .

a sort, and that he was distressed by his ejus pars "). He had a brother Paul, in dea-
brother's danger of apostasy. [j-^^'-l con's orders (" frater carnis et spiritus ger-
Gallus (11), abbat, the apostle of Switzer- —
manitate carissime" though his metaphorical
land. One primary authority is the Vita S. use of similar language in speaking of St.
380 GAUDENTIUS GAUDENTIUS
Peter and St. Paul as " vere consanguine! the fact that the learned Rufmus dedicated to
"
fratres, .sanguinis communione germanos
. . him, in or about that year, his trans, of the
makes the point somewhat doubtful). While Clementine Recognitions, in which he describes
still a young man he went on pilgrimage to him as " nostrorum decus insigne doctorum,"
the Holy Land, as many of his contempor- and says that every word that fell from him
aries did (cf. Hieron. Epp. 44, 48). His way deserved to be taken down for the benefit of
lay through Cappadocia. At Caesarea he posterity. Rufinus refers particularly to his
made the acquaintance of two nieces of St. knowledge of Greek and though he does not
;

Basil, " mothers " of a convent there, who directly name the see which he held, the
gave him some ashes of the famous Forty of identification is aided by his statement that
Sebastia, which had been given to them by the Gaudentius to whom his work was dedi-
their uncle. These ashes, or rather the Forty
themselves, he says, were his "faithful com-

cated was heir to the virgin Silvia probably
the Silvia, sister-in-law of Rufinus the well-
panions " on the rest of the journey and at a; known praefectus orientis, to whom Gamur-
later time he deposited them, with other relics rini attributes, though probably without
which he had collected, in a basilica which he good reason, the Peregrinatio he discovered
built at Brescia and called the Concilium in 1884. This Silvia is known to have been
Sanctorum. At Antioch, probably, he became buried at Brescia (Gamurrini, Peregrinatio,
acquainted with St. John Chrysostom, who p. xxxvi ; Butler, Lausiac Hist. i. p. 296, ii.
never forgot the warmth of affection which pp. 148, 229). Gaudentius was buried in a
he then shewed. Gaudentius was in the East church at Brescia, which is thought to be the
when Philaster of Brescia died. The people same as his own Concilium Sanctorum.
of Brescia elected him to be their bishop. Gaudentius was not a writer. The most
They were rash enough to bind themselves modest of men, he thought it enough if he
with an oath, so Gaudentius says, that they might instruct the flock committed to him
would have him and no other. A deputation by word of mouth {Praefatio ad Benivolum).
of them was sent out to him, reinforced by But there was a leading magistrate of Brescia
urgent letters from St. Ambrose and other named Benivolus, who had formerly {in 386)
bishops of the province. Gaudentius resisted, thrown up his situation in the imperial service
but the Eastern bishops among whom he was rather than abet the attacks of justina upon
sojourning went so far as to threaten to ex- St. Ambrose. This man, one year, was
communicate him if he would not comply. At hindered by sickness from attending the (
last his resistance broke down. He returned, Easter services. He begged Gaudentius to
and was consecrated to the vacant see, pre- write down for him the addresses which he
sumably by St. Ambrose himself. The address had failed to hear. Gaudentius complied.
which was delivered on that day, according to In addition to the eight discourses on the
custom, by the newly consecrated bishop has directions in Exodus concerning the Passover
been preserved {Sertn. xvi.). St. Ambrose was and two on the Marriage at Cana, which had
present at the delivery of it, and was expected been delivered during that Eastertide, he sent
to follow it up with an address of his own. also four on various Gospel texts, and a fifth
The episcopate of Gaudentius was not, so on the Maccabean martyrs. Besides these
far as we know, eventful. But there was one fifteen sermons sent to Benivolus, four occa-
remarkable adventure in the course of it. In sional sermons of his are in existence, taken
the year 404 or 405 he was chosen, along with down shorthand and published (apparently)
in
two other bishops and two Roman priests, to without his consent. They were delivered re-
bear to the Eastern emperor Arcadius an spectively on the day of his own, consecration,
epistle from his Western colleague Honorius. at the dedication of his new basilica, at Milan
and from Innocent I. of Rome and the Italian by desire of St. Ambrose on the feast of St.
bishops, urging that an oecumenical council Peter and St. Paul, and on the anniversary
should be convened, to examine the case of of his predecessor's death. To these sermons
St. John Chrysostom, who had been deposed are added two expository letters, one to a man
and banished from Constantinople. Palla- named Serminius on the Unjust Steward,
dius (Dial. c. 4\ who accompanied the envoys the other to his brother Paul on the text " My
and who gives us this information, does not, Father is greater than I."
indeed, mention the see of the envoy Gaud- Gaudentius felt himself bound, like others
entius ; but no other bearer of the name is so of his time, to give "spiritual," i.e. allegorical,
likely to have been chosen as the bp. of interpretations of his texts. These are often
Brescia. The mission was ineffectual, and in the highest degree fantastic, and have
such sufferings were inflicted upon the envoys drawn upon their author the severe criticism
as might well earn for Gaudentius his title of of Du Pin (Bibl. eccl. siecle v. pt. i.). But
" Confessor." He received a warm letter of Gaudentius generally prepares for them by a
thanks from St. Chrysostom {Ep. 184) for his literal interpretation, and when he does so,
exertions on his behalf. The letter probably the exegesis is usually marked by good sense.
refers to exertions preparatory to the mission, Gaudentius is interested in textual criticism,
or the reference to the fate of the mission and more than once remarks on the corre-
would have been more explicit. spondence or conflict between the Latin text,
How long Gaudentius held his see is not as he knows it, and the Greek. He is an
certain. In his sermon on Philaster he men- independent interpreter himself (Serm. xix.,
tions that it is the fourteenth time that he " Ego tamen pro libertate fidei opportunitatem
has pronounced his yearly panegyric ; but as dictorum secretus traxi ad," etc.), and vin-
the date of his consecration to the episcopate dicates the like freedom for others (Serm.
is conjectural, this indication is not decisive. xviii. " Nulli praejudicaturus, qualiter inter-
That he was still bishop in 410 appears from pretari voluerit "). When dealing with moral
GAUDENtlUS GELAStUS 381

subjects there is a fine elevation in his utter- Gelasius bp. of Rome after Felix III.
(1) I.,
ance. As a theologian he has a firm grasp on (or II.) from Mar. 492 to Nov. 496, during
the Nicene doctrine as taught by St. Ambrose. about 4i years. At the time of his accession
Arianism is a defeated foe (Serm. xxi. " Fur- the schism between the Western and Eastern
entem eo tempore Arianam perfidiam "), but churches, which had begun under his prede-
one that still needs vigorous refutation. In cessor, had lasted more than 7 years. Its
regard to other doctrinal points, it may be occasion had been the excommunication, by
observed that, however strongly Gaudentius pope Felix, of Acacius, patriarch of Constan-
expresses himself about the Holy Eucharist tinople, for supporting and communicating
in the terms of his age (Serm. ii. 244), he insists with Peter Mongus, the once Monophysite
characteristically that the Flesh and Blood of patriarch of Alexandria, who had, however,
Christ are to be spiritually understood {ib. satisfied Acacius by subscribing the Henoticon,
241, " Agni carnes, id est, doctrinae ejus and afterwards the Nicene creed. There had
viscera "). He puts much faith in the inter- been other grounds of complaint against
cessions of the saints, though he does not Acacius, notably his disregard of the authority
directly speak of invoking them {Serm. xvii. of the Roman see but the above had been
;

XX. xxi. ad fin.). He dwells with emphasis the original cause of quarrel. [Felix III. ;

on the supernatural character of our Lord's Acacius (7).]


birth, not only of His conception (e.g. Serm. Acacius being now dead, the dispute con-
viii. 270, ix. 281). His style is easy his sen-
; cerned only the retention of his name in the
tences often admirably terse and pointed (e.g. diptychs of the Eastern church. Felix had
Praef. 227, " Si autem Justus es, nomen quidem demanded its erasure as a condition of inter-
justi praesumere non audebis ; Serm. vii. 265, communion with his successors, but they had
" Quod Deus majorem causam tunc ulcis- refused to comply. The patriarch of Con-
cendi habeat, si in exiguis rebus, ubi nulla stantinople was now Euphemius the emperor
;

difficultas est observandi, pervicaci tantum Anastasius. On his accession Gelasius wrote
spiritu contemnatur "). His sermons pre- a respectful letter to the emperor, who did not
serve a good many interesting notes of the reply. To Euphemius the new pope did not
life of the time (e.g. Serm. xiii., the beggars at write, as was usual, to inform him of his
the church door, the dread of the barbarian accession. Euphemius, however, wrote twice
invasions, the landowner who leaves his to Gelasius, expressing a strong desire for
labourers to be supported by the church, the reconciliation between the churches, and a
horses and mules adorned with gold and silver, hope that Gelasius would, through condescen-
the heathen altar allowed to remain on a sion and a spirit of charity, be able to restore
Christian man's estate). His vocabulary is concord. He insisted that Acacius himself
rather interesting ; he uses popular words had been no heretic, and that before he
(e.g. brodium) on the one hand, and recherche communicated with Peter Mongus the latter
words (e.g. peccamen, victorialis) on the other. had been purged of heresy. He asked by
It has been made the subject of a special what synodical authority Acacius had been
study by Paucker (Zeitschr. f. d. osterreich. condemned and alleged that the people of
;

Gymnasien, xxxii. pp. 481 ff.). Constantinople would never allow his name to
The chief ed. of his works is that of Paolo be erased but suggested that the pope might
;

Gagliardi (Galeardus), canon of Brescia, pub. send an embassy to Constantinople to treat


at Padua in 1720, or rather the second and on the subject. Gelasius, in his reply,
improved ed. of 1738, printed at Brescia. couched in a tone of imperious humility,
This is reprinted in Migne's Patr. Lat. vol. xx. utterly refuses any compromise. He speaks
Accounts of Gaudentius and his works will of the custom of the bishops of the apostolic
be found in Tillemont, t. x. pt. 2 in Nirschl, see notifying their elevation to inferior bishops
;

Lehrbuch d. Patrologie (Mainz, 1883), ii. pp. as a condescension rather than an obligation,
488 ff. in Hauck-Herzog Realencycl. vi. (by and one certainly not due to such as chose to
;

Leimbach); and in Wetzer and Welte, Kirchen- cast in their lot with heretics. He treats with
lex. V. (by Hefele). [a.j.m.1 contempt the plea of the determined attitude
Gaudentius (7), Donatist bp. of Thamugada of the people of Constantinople. The shep-
(Temugadi), a town of Numidia, about 14 herd ought, he says, to lead the flock, not the
Roman miles N.E. of Lambesa (Ant. Itin. 34, flock control the shepherd. The letter thus
2), one of the seven managers on the Donatist asserts in no measured terms the supremacy
side in Carth. Conf., a.d. 411 (Mon. Vet. Don. of the see of Rome, and the necessity of sub-
pp. 288, 408, ed. Oberthiir). His name mitting to it. " We shall come," he con-
is chiefly known by his controversy with cludes, " brother Euphemius, without doubt
St. Augustine, c. 420. Dulcitius had informed to that tremendous tribunal of Christ, with
him what was the course intended by the those standing round by whom the faith has
imperial government towards the Donatists. been defended. There it will be proved
Gaudentius replied in two letters, which Dul- whether the glorious confession of St. Peter
citius sent to Augustine, whose reply to them has left anything short for the salvation of
in two books entitled contra Gaudentium (Aug. those given to him to rule, or whether there
0pp. vol. ix. 707-751, ed. Migne) may be has been rebellious and pernicious obstinacy
regarded as representing the close of the in those who were unwilling to obey him."
Donatist controversy (vol. i. p. 895). The In 493 Gelasius wrote a long letter to the
Donatist cause, already languishing, from this Eastern bishops. Its main drift was to justify
time fell into a decay, to which these trea- the excommunication of Acacius by asserting
tises of St. Augustine materially contributed. that he had exceeded his powers in absolving
Sparrow Simpson, S. Aug. and African Ch. Peter Mongus without the authority of the
Divisions (1910), pp. 133-137. [h.w.p.] Roman see, and plainly asserts the supremacy
382 GELASIUS GELASIUS
of the apostolic see over the whole church as abettors, and all who communicated with
due to the original commission of Christ to them." Gelasius died in Nov. 496.
St. Peter, and as having always existed prior A curious treatise of his called Tomus de
to,and independent of, all synods and canons. Anathematis Vinculo refers to those canons of
He speaks of " the apostolical judgment, the council of Chalcedon, giving independent
which the voice of Christ, the tradition of authority to the see of Constantinople, of
the elders, and the authority of canons had which pope Leo had disapproved, setting forth
supported, that it should itself always deter- that the fact of this council having done some-
mine questions throughout the church." As thing wrongly did not impair the validity of
to the possibility of Acacius being absolved what it had rightly done, and that the ap-
now, having died excommunicate, he says that proval of the see of Rome was the sole test of
Christ Himself, Who raised the dead, is never what was right. The tract contains further
said to have absolved those who died in error, arguments as to Rome alone having been
and that even to St. Peter it was on earth only competent to reconcile Peter Mongus or to
that the power of binding and loosing had absolve Acacius, and in reference to the idea
been given. Such a tone was not calculated of the emperor having had power in the latter
to conciliate. The name of Gelasius himself case without the leave of Rome, the same
was therefore removed from the diptychs of distinction between the spheres of the ecclesi-
the Constantinopolitan church. Gelasius astical and civil jurisdictions is drawn as in the
wrote a long letter to the emperor in a similar letter to the emperor. Melchizedek is referred
vein, and exhorted him to use his temporal to as having in old times been both priest and
power to control his people in spiritual as well king ; the devil, it is said, in imitation of him,
as mundane matters. This letter is note- had induced the emperors to assume the
worthy as containing a distinct expression of supreme pontificate but since Christianity
;

the view taken by Gelasius of the relations had revealed the truth to the world, the union
between the ecclesiastical and civil jurisdic- of the two powers had ceased to be lawful :

tions. Each he regards as separate and Christ, in consideration of human frailty, had
supreme in its own sphere. As in secular now for ever separated them, leaving the
things priests are bound to obey princes, so emperors dependent on the pontiffs for their
in spiritual things all the faithful, including everlasting salvation, the pontiffs on the
princes, ought to submit their hearts to emperors for the administration of all tem-
priests ; and, if to priests generally, much poral affairs. Milman {Lat. Christ.) remarks
more to the prelate of that see which even on the contrast between the interpretation of
supreme Divinity has willed should be over all the type of Melchizedek and that given in the
priests, and to which the subsequent piety of 13th cent, by pope Innocent IV., who takes
the general church has perpetually accorded Melchizedek as prefiguring the union in the
such pre-eminence. Gelasius also wrote on pope of the sacerdotal and royal powers.
the same subjects to the bishops of various Two other works are attributed to Gelasius
provinces, including those of East Illyricum in which views are expressed not easily recon-
and Dardania. In his address to the last he ciled with those of his successors. One is a
enlarges on its being the function of the tract, the authenticity of which has not been
Roman see, not only to carry out the decisions questioned, against the Manicheans at Rome,
of synods, but even to give to such decisions in which the practice, adopted by that sect, of
their whole authority. Nay, the purpose of communion in one kind is strongly condemned.
synods is spoken of as being simply to express His words are, " We find that some, taking
the assent of the church at large to what the only the portion of the sacred body, abstain
pope had already decreed and what was from the cup of the sacred blood. Let these
therefore already binding. This, he says, had (since I know not by what superstition they
been the case in the instance of the council of are actuated) either receive the entire sacra-
Chalcedon. Further, instances are alleged of ments or be debarred from them altogether ;

popes having on their own mere authority because a division of one and the same
reversed the decisions of synods, absolved mystery cannot take place without great
those whom synods had condemned, and sacrilege." Baronius evades the obviously
condemned those whom synods had absolved. general application of these words by saying
The cases of Athanasius and Chrysostom are that they refer only to the Manicheans.
cited as examples. Lastly, any claim of The treatise de Duabtis Natttris, arguing
Constantinople (contemptuously spoken of as against the Eutychian position that the union
in the diocese of Heraclea) to be exempt from of the human and divine natures in Christ
the judgment of " the first see " is put aside implies the absorption of the human into the
as absurd, since " the power of a secular divine, adduces the Eucharist as the image,
kingdom is one thing, the distribution of similitude, and representation of the same
ecclesiastical dignities another." mystery, the point being that as, after conse-
In 495 Gelasius convened a synod of 46 cration, the natural substance of the bread and
bishops at Rome to absolve and restore to his wine remains unchanged, so the human nature
see Misenus of Cumae, one of the bishops sent of Christ remained unchanged notwithstand-
by pope Felix to Constantinople in the affair ing its union with divinity. His words are :

of Acacius, who had been then won over, and " The sacraments of the body and blood of
in consequence excommunicated. Before re- Christ which we take are a divine thing, inas-
ceiving absolution this prelate was required much as through them we are made partakers
to declare that he " condemned, anathema- of the divine nature ; and yet the substance or
tized, abhorred, and for ever execrated Dios- nature of bread and wine ceases not to be."
corus, Aelurus, Peter Mongus, Peter Fullo, This language being inconsistent with the
Acacius, and all their successors, accomplices, doctrine of transubstantiation, Baronius first
GELASIUS GENNADIUS 383

disputes the authorship of the treatise, and selection of facts, nor good sense in his judg-
secondly, seeks to explain the words away. ments." Instances of his untrustworthiness
But if the authoritatively enunciated views of are seen in his statements that the council was
Gelasius on the relations between civil and summoned by pope Sylvester, and that Hosius
ecclesiastical authority, on communion in one of Cordova presided as his delegate ; and he
kind and on transubstantiation, are incon- devotes many chapters (ii. 11-24) to disputa-
sistent with those subsequently endorsed by tions on the divinity of the Holy Spirit, which
Rome, yet, on the other hand, few. if any, of had not then come into controversy at all.
his successors have gone beyond him in their The work is in vol. ii. of Labbe's collection
claims of supreme and universal authority be- (col. 103-286) and in those of Harduin and
longing by divine institution to the Roman see. Mansi. Phot. Biblioth. Codd. 15, 88, 89 ;

Among his works is a treatise Decretum de Fabric. Biblioth. Graec. v. 24, vi. 4 Cave,
;

Libris Recipiendis, fixing the canonical books Hist. Lit. i. 454; Dupin, iv. 187
; Le Quien,
of Scripture, and distinguishing between Or. Christ, iii. 568. [e.v.]
ancient ecclesiastical writers to be received or GennadiuS (iO), 21st bp. of Constantinople,
rejected. It bears signs of a later date, 458-471, between Anatolius and Acacius. His
having been first assigned to Gelasius by first public appearance was in an attack on
Hincmar of Rheims in the 7th cent. The Cyril, in two works, c. 431 or 432, Against the
most memorable of the works attributed to A nathemas of Cyril, and Two Books to Parthe-
him is the Gelasian Sacramentary, which was nius. In the latter he exclaims, " How many
that in use till Gregory the Great revised and times have I heard blasphemies from Cyril of

abbreviated it. A new ed. was edited by H. Egypt ? Woe to the scourge of Alexandria " !

A. Wilson (Oxf. 1894). See also C. H. Turner, In 433 Gennadius was probably one of those
in the Jl. of Theol. Studies (igoo-iqoi), i. who became reconciled with Cyril.
556 ff. [Sacramentary in D. C. A.] A In 458 he was a presbyter at Constantinople
Sacramentary in several books found in the anddesignated by Leo to fill the see as a man
queen of Sweden's library, and published by of spotless reputation, on whom no suspicion
Thomasius in 1680, is supposed to be the had ever breathed, and of holy life and con-
Gelasian one. The main authorities for his spicuous learning. From the beginning of his
Life, besides the Liber Pontificalis, are the episcopate Gennadius proved his zeal for the
letters of himself and his contemporaries, and Catholic faith and the maintenance of dis-
his other extant writings. [j.b— y.] cipline. His discretion was before long tested.
Gelasius (13) of Cyzicus, in 2nd half of the Timothy Aelurus, chased from the see of
5th cent., author of a work on the history of Alexandria by order of the emperor, had
the council of Nicaea, entitled by Photius obtained leave to come to Constantinople,
The Acts of the First Council in Three Books. intending, by a pretence of Catholicism, to
Our only knowledge of the author is derived re-establish himself on his throne. Gennadius,
from himself. Photius acknowledges his urged by Leo, bp. of Rome, June 17, 460, did
inability to determine who he was. We learn his utmost to prevent the voyage of Timothy,
from Gelasius' s own words that he was the and to secure the immediate consecration
son of a presbyter of Cyzicus, and, while still of an orthodox prelate for Alexandria. All
residing in his father's house, fell in with an happened as Leo desired ; Timothy Aelurus
old parchment volume which had belonged to was banished to the Chersonese, and Timothy
Dalmatius, bp. of Cyzicus, containing a long Solofaciolus was chosen bp. of Alexandria in
account of the proceedings of the council of his stead. An appointment which Gennadius
Nicaea. This document not supplying all the made about this time, that of Marcian, who
information he desired, Gelasius examined the had been a Novatianist, but had come over
works of other writers, from which he filled to the orthodox church, to the important post
up the gaps. He mentions the work of an of chancellor of the goods of the church of
ancient writer named John, a presbyter other- Constantinople, shewed his liberality, pene-
wise unknown, the works of Eusebius of tration, and desire for order. Two Egyptian
Caesarea and Rufinus (whom he calls a Roman solitaries told John Moschus a story which is
presbyter), who were both eye-witnesses, and also told by Theodorus Lector. The church of
many others. From these and other sources St. Eleutherius at Constantinople was served
Gelasius compiled his history of the Nicene by areader named Carisius, who led a disorderly
council. It is sometimes taken for granted Gennadius severely reprimanded him in
life.
that it contains a complete collection of the vain. According to the rules of the church,
synodal acts of the council. There is, how- the patriarch had him flogged, which was also
ever, no evidence of the existence of such a ineffectual. The patriarch sent one of his
collection, or of any one having seen or used officers to the church of St. Eleutherus to beg
it. Athanasius had none such to refer to (cf. that holy martyr either to correct the un-
Athan. de Decret. Syn. Nic. 1. 2), and cer- worthy reader or to take him from the world.
tainly we do not possess it in Gelasius (cf. Next day Carisius was found dead, to the
Hefele, Hist, cf Councils, Eng. trans. 263, 264).terror of the whole town. Theodorus also
From the work itself we learn that it was relates how a painter, presuming to depict the
composed in Bithynia. As an historical Saviour under the form of Jupiter, had his
authority it is almost worthless. Its prolix hand withered, but was healed by the prayers
disputations and lengthy orations are, as Cave of Gennadius.
has justly remarked, evidently the writer's own Gennadius ordained Daniel the Stylite
composition. Dupin's verdict is still more presbyter, as related in that saint's life, at
severe. " There is neither order in his narra- the request of the emperor Leo, standing at
tive, nor exactness in his observations, nor the foot of the Pharos and performing the
elegance in his language, nor judgment in his ceremonies there. The buying and sellmg of
384 GENNADlUS MASSILIENSIS GENOVEFA
holy orders was a crying scandal of the age. Ito employ the invocation of the Holy Trinity
Measures had been taken against simony by (52). He recommends weekly reception of the
the council of Chalcedon. In 459 or 460 Eucharist by all not under the burden of
Gennadius, finding the evil practice unabated, mortal sin. Such as are should have recourse
held a council at Constantinople to consider to public penitence. He will not deny that
it. An encyclical was issued, adding ana- private penance may suffice ; but even here
thema to the former sentence. outward manifestation, such as change of
Gennadius died in 471, and stands out as dress, is desirable. Daily reception of holy
an able and successful administrator, for communion he will neither praise nor blame
whom no historian has anything but praise, if (53). Evil was invented by Satan (57).
we except the criticism naturally aroused by Though celibacy is rated above matrimony,
his attack in his younger days against Cyril to condemn marriage is Manichean (67). A
of Alexandria, an attack which the un- twice-married Christian should not be or-
measured language of Cyril perhaps excuses. dained (72). Churches should be called after
Gennadius wrote a commentary on Daniel martyrs, and the relics of martyrs honoured
and many other parts of O.T. and on all the (73). None but the baptized attain eternal
epistles of St. Paul, and a great number of life ; not even catechumens, unless they suffer
homilies. Of these only a few fragments martyrdom (74). Penitence thoroughly avails
remain. The principal are on Gen., Ex., Ps., to Christians even at their latest breath (80).
Rom., I. and II. Cor., Gal., and Heb., and are The Creator alone knows our secret thoughts.
interesting specimens of 5th-cent. exegesis. Satan can learn them only by our motions and
That on Romans, a series of explanatory re- manifestations (81). Marvels may be wrought
marks on isolated texts, is the most important. in the Lord's name even by bad men (84).
He fails to grasp the great central doctrine of Men can become holy without such marks (85).
the epistle, but shews thought and spiritual The freedom of man's will is strongly asserted
life. Gennadius, CP. Patr., Pair. Gk. Ixxxv. in this short treatise, but the commencement
p. 1611, etc. ; Holland. AA. SS. Aug. 25, of all goodness is assigned to divine grace.
p. 148 ; Ceillier, x. 343. [w.m.s.] The language of Gennadius is here not quite
Gennadius (11) Massiliensis, presbyter of Augustinian ; but neither is it Pelagian, and
Marseilles, who died in 496. the work was long included among those of
If we accept his de Viris Illustribus as it is St. Augustine.
commonly published, we are warranted in The de Viris Illustribus is given in most good
classing Gennadius of Marseilles with the edd. of the works of St. Jerome, and is ed. by
serai- Pelagians, as he censures Augustine and Dr. Richardson in the Lib. of Nicene and Post-
Prosper and praises Faustus. Moreover, the Nicene Fathers ; the Liber de Ecclesiasticis
very laudatory account of St. Jerome at the Dogmatibus is in the Appendix to t. viii. of
commencement of the book seems inconsistent the Benedictine ed. of St. Augustine (p. 75).
with the hostile reference to that father under Cf. C. H. Turner in /. of Tkeol. Studies (1905),
the art. Rufinus in the same catalogue. vii. 78-99, who prints a new text of the Liber
The de Viris Illustribus in its most common- de Eccl. Dogm. [j.g.c]
ly accepted form was probably published c. Genovefa {Genevieve), patron saint of Paris
495, and contains, in some ten folio pages, and of France. The most ancient records
short biographies of ecclesiastics between 392 tell the story of her life as follows : About
and 495. Although lacking the lively touches A.D. 430 St. Germanus of Auxerre and St.
of his great predecessor, Jerome, the catalogue Lupus of Troves, proceeding to England to
of Gennadius exhibits a real sense of propor- combat the Pelagian heresy, stayed one
tion. The greater men stand out in its pages, evening at Nanterre, then a village, about 7
and it conveys much real and valuable infor- miles from Paris. The villagers assembled to
mation. With due allowance for the bias see the two renowned prelates, and a little girl
referred to, it may be regarded as a trust- attracted the notice of St. Germanus. He
worthy compilation. learnt that her name was Genovefa, her
His other treatise, entitled Epistola de Fide parents' names Severus and Gerontia. The
tned, or de Ecclesiasticis Dogmatibus Liber, parents were summoned, and bidden rejoice
begins with a profession of faith in the three in the sanctity of their daughter, who would
creeds, interwoven with the names of those be the means of saving many. Addressing
who are considered by the writer (with himself to the child, he dwelt on the high state
occasionally questionable accuracy) to have of virginity, and engaged her to consecrate
impugned this or that article of belief. Gen- herself. Before departing St. Germanus
nadius considers (like later writers, e.g. reminded her of her promise, and gave her a
Aquinas) that all men, even those alive at the brazen coin marked with the cross, to wear as
second Advent, will have to die (7). But this her only ornament. Henceforth miracles
conviction, though derived from a widespread marked lier out as the spouse of Christ. When
patristic tradition, is, he admits, rejected by St. Germanus arrived in Paris on a second
equally catholic and learned Fathers. Of the journey to Britain, he asked tidings of St.
theories concerning the soul of man subse- Genovefa, and was met with the murmurs of
quently known as the creationist and the her detractors. Disregarding their tales, he
traducianist views, he espouses the creationist. sought her dwelling, humbly saluted her,
He will not allow the existence of the spirit shewed the people the floor of her chamber
as a third element in man besides the body wet with her secret tears, and commended her
and the soul, but regards it as only another to their love. When the rumour of Attila's
name for the soul (19). Heretical baptism is merciless and irresistible progress reached
not to be repeated, unless it has been admin- Paris, the terrified citizens were for fleeing
istered by heretics who would have declined with their families and goods. But Genovefa
6EN3ERIC GENSERIC 385
assembled the matrons and bade them seek returned to his allegiance, supported by an
deliverance by prayer and fasting rather than army of allied Goths, the Vandals were obliged
by flight. The Huns were diverted through by famine, after a siege of 14 months, to
the efficacy of her prayers, as after-ages be- alaandon the attempt. St. Augustine died in
lieved (c. 448). Her abstinence and self-in- Aug. A.D. 430, in the 3rd month of the siege
flicted privations were notable. From her 15 th (Possidius, Life of St. Aug. in Migne, Patr.
to her 50th year she ate but twice a week, and Lat. xxxii. 59). Soon afterwards Boniface,
then only bread of barley or beans. Thereafter, defeated with great loss, returned to Italy.
by command of her bishops, she added a little Genseric concluded at Hippo, on Feb. 10, 435,
fish and milk. Every Saturday she kept a a peace with Valentinian, undertaking to pay
vigil in her church of St. Denys, and from a tribute for the territories he had conquered,
Ej)iphany till Easter remained immured in her and to leave unmolested those still held by
cell. Before her death Clevis, of whose con- Valentinian, sending his son Hunneric as a
version a later legend has made her the joint hostage. In 437 Genseric began to perse-
author with Clotilda, began to build for her cute the Catholic bishops in the ceded terri-
the church which later bore her name. Un- tories, of whom Possidius Novatus and
finished at his death, it was completed by Severianus were the most illustrious, and not
Clotilda, and dedicated to SS. Peter and Paul. only took their churches from them, but
Upon Genovefa's death (Jan. 3, 512) she was banished them from their sees. Four Span-
buried in it. iards, Arcadius, Probus, Paschasius, and
The chief authority for her history is an Eutychius, who were faithful servants of
anonymous author, who asserts that he wrote Genseric, but who refused at his command to
18 years after her death, therefore c. a.d. 530. embrace Arianism, were tortured and put to
This life was first published by Jean Ravisi, death. Paulillus, a younger brother of
of Nevers, in his Des Femmes illnstres (Paris, Paschasius and Eutychius, was cruelly
1521), and then by Surius, with corrections in scourged and reduced to slavery.
the style (Jan. 3); again, by the Bollandists, Genseric, after procuring the restoration of
in 1643, from better MSS., together with an- his son, took Carthage by surprise, Oct. 19,
other Life differing only in unimportant par- 439. The bishops and noble laity were
ticulars {Acta SS. Jan. i, 138 seq.). The Life stripped of their possessions and offered the
of St. Germanus of Auxerre by Constantius alternative of slavery or exile. Quodvultdeus,
(c. 5, Boll. ActaSS. Jul. vii. 211), and that part bp. of Carthage, and a number of his clergy
of St. Genovefa's which relates to him, almost were compelled to embark in unseaworthy
certainly have a common source, or else one is ships, but reached Naples in safety. All the
taken from the other, with slight alterations. churches within the walls of Carthage were
That episode being subtracted, there is nothing handed over from the Catholics to the Arians,
in the remainder which might not be the work and also many of those outside, especially two
of a later age. The history, therefore, must dedicated to St. Cyprian. The Arians in this
be accepted with great doubt. Innumerable were, however, only meting out to the Cath-
Lives of St. Genovefa have appeared in France olics treatment such as they received where
in modern times, mostly of a devotional the latter party was the stronger. Genseric
character, and useless for critical or historical ordered funeral processions of the Catholics to
purposes. Saintyves, Vie de Ste. Genevieve ;
be conducted in silence and sent the remainder
Baillet, Vies des saints, Jan. 3, t. ii. 417 ;
of the clergy into exile. Some of the most
Bedouet, Hist, et culte de Ste. G. (Paris, 1866) ;
distinguished clergy and laity of these pro-
Lefeuve, Hist, de Ste. G. c. xiii. (Paris, 1842) ;
vinces petitioned the king to be allowed to live
Fleury, Hist, eccles. Ixix. 22, Ixxiv. 39 Dulaure, in peace under the Vandals.
;
He replied, " I
Hist, de Paris, i. 240-241. [s.a.b.1 have resolved to let none of your race and
GenseriC, king of the Vandals, the illegiti- name escape. How then do you dare to
mate son of king Godigiselus, reigned in Spain make such a demand ? " and was with diffi-
jointly with his legitimate brother Gunderic, culty restrained by the entreaties of his
and on the death of the latter, a.d. 428, became attendants from drowning the petitioners in
sole sovereign. He is said to have been the adjoining sea. The Catholics, deprived
originally a Catholic, but early in life em- of their churches, were obliged to celebrate the
braced the Arian heresy. divine mysteries where and as best they could.
Before the death of Gunderic, Boniface, In 440 Genseric equipped a fleet, with which
count of Africa, forced to seek safety in revolt, he ravaged Sicily and besieged Palermo. At
invited the Vandals to invade Africa. Gen- the instigation of Maximus, the leader of the
seric readily accepted, and in May 429, Arians in Sicily, he persecuted the Catholics,
according to Idatius (in 427 according to some of whom suffered martj'rdom. Accord-
Prosper), crossed into Africa with 50,000 ing to Prosper, he was recalled by news of the
warriors, who poured over the fertile and arrival in Africa of count Sebastian, son-in-law
defenceless provinces. Carthage, Cirta, and of count Boniface, but Idatius places his
Hippo Regius alone withstood the tide of arrival ten years later. Sebastian had come
invasion. The Vandals especially ravaged as a friend to take refuge at his court, but
the churches, basilicas, cemeteries, and mon- Genseric, who feared his renown as a statesman
asteries. Bishops and priests were tortured and general, tried to convert him to Arianism,
to compel them to disclose the church trea- that his refusal might supply a pretext for
sures. Victor mentions two who were burnt putting him to death. Sebastian evaded his

alive the venerable Papinian, one of his demands by a dexterous reply, which Gen-
predecessors in the see of Vita, and Man- seric was unable to answer, but some other
suetus, bp. of Urci. Hippo was besieged, but excuse for his execution was shortly found.
through the efforts of count Boniface, who had la A.D. 441 a new peace was concluded, by
25
386 GENSERIC GENSERIC
which Valentinian retained the three Mauri- to take possession of their church. The
tanias and part of Numidia, and ceded the Arians, headed by a priest named Adduit,
remainder of his African dominions to Gen- attacked the church, part forcing an entrance
seric, who divided the Zeugitane or procon- with drawn swords and part shooting arrows
sular province, in which was Carthage, among through the windows. The reader was killed
the Vandals and kept the rest in his own in the pulpit by an arrow, and many wor-
possession. Universal oppression of the shippers slain on the altar-steps. Most of the
natives followed. Then Genseric discovered survivors were executed by Genseric's orders.
a plot among his nobles against himself, and Genseric, by the advice of the Arian bishops,
tortured and executed many of them. Prob- commanded all officials of his court to embrace
ably from alarm at this conspiracy, he began Arianism. According to Victor's account,
a new and severer persecution. The Cath- Armogast, one of the number, refused, and was
olics were allowed no place for prayer or the tightly bound with cords, but they broke like
ministration of the sacraments. Every allu- a spider's web and when he was hung head
;

sion in a sermon to Pharaoh, Nebuchadnezzar, downwards by one foot, he seemed to sleep


or Holofernes was regarded as aimed at the as peacefully as if in his bed. His persecutors,
king, and the preacher punished with exile. unable to overcome his resolution, were about
Among the bishops now banished, Victor to kill him, but were dissuaded by an Arian
mentions Urbanus of Girba, Crescius, a metro- priest, lest he should be reverenced as a
politan who presided over 120 bishops, Habet- martyr. He was accordingly compelled to
deus of Teudela, and Eustratius of Suffectum. labour in the fields and afterwards to tend
Felix of Adrumetum was banished for receiv- cattle near Carthage.
ing a foreign monk. Genseric prohibited the The emperor Majorian in 460 assembled a'
consecration of new bishops in place of those fleet of 300 vessels at Carthagena to recover
banished. In 454, however, he yielded to Africa. His plans were betrayed to the
Valentinian's requests so far as to allow Deo- Vandals, who surprised and carried off the
gratias to be consecrated for Carthage. The greater part of his ships. Genseric, however,
see had remained vacant since the banishment in alarm, concluded peace with Majorian. In
of Quodvultdeus 15 years before. In 455 468 Leo collected a mighty armament of 1,113
Genseric, at the invitation of Eudoxia, ships, each containing 100 men (Cedrenus,
Valentinian's widow, sailed to Italy, and took 350, ed. Dindorf.), under the command of his
Rome without a blow. At the intercession brother-in-law Basiliscus. The main arma-
of Leo the Great, he abstained from torturing ment landed at the Hermaean promontory
or massacring the inhabitants and burning (Cape Bon), about 40 miles from Carthage.
the city, but gave it up to systematic Genseric, by means, it was generally believed,
plunder. For 14 days and nights the work of of a large bride, induced Basiliscus to grant a
pillage continued, the city was ransacked of truce for five days. He used this time to
its remaining treasures, and Genseric then man all the ships he could, and, the wind
returned unmolested to Africa, carrying much becoming favourable, attacked the Romans
booty and many thousand captives, including and sent fire-ships among their crowded
the empress Eudoxia and her two daughters. vessels. Panic and confusion spread through
The elder became the wife of his son Hun- the vast multitude, most of whom tried to fly,
neric ; the younger, with her mother, was but a few fell fighting gallantly to the last.
eventually surrendered to the emperor Leo. After this victory Genseric regained Sardinia
The whole of Africa now fell into the hands and Tripoli, where the Roman arms had met
of Genseric,and also Sicily, Sardinia, Corsica, with success, and ravaged the Mediterranean
and the Balearic Islands. His fleets yearly coasts more cruelly than before, till a peace
sailed from Carthage in the early spring, and was concluded between him and the emperor
ravaged all the Mediterranean coasts. When Zeno. Genseric, at the request of the em-
leaving Carthage on one of these expeditions, peror's ambassador Severus, released those
the helmsman asked Genseric whither he prisoners who had fallen to his own or his
should steer. " Against those," he replied, sons' lot, and allowed him to ransom as many
" who have incurred the wrath of God." His others as he could (Malchus, de Legationibus, 3,
object was not only to plunder, but to per- ed. Dindorf), and, at Leo's entreaty, allowed
secute. Spain, Italy, Dalmatia, Campania, the churches of Carthage to be reopened and
Calabria, Apulia, Bruttium, Venetia, Lucania, the exiled bishops and clergy to return. Soon
Epirus, and the Peloponnese all suffered from afterwards he died, on Jan. 24, 477.
his ravages. After the death of Deogratias, According to the description of Jornandes
A.D. 457, Genseric did not allow any more (de Gothorum Origine, c. 33, in Cassiodorus, i.
bishops to be consecrated in the proconsular 412, in Migne, Pair. Lat. Ixix. 1274), Genseric
province, the peculiar domain of the Vandals, was of moderate stature and lame from a fall
so that of the original number of 164 only from his horse. He was a man of few words,
three were left in Victor's time. One Pro- and thus better able to conceal the deep
culus was sent to compel the bishops to give designs he had conceived. He scorned
up all their books and the sacramental vessels. luxury, was greedy of empire, passionate,
When they refused, they were seized by force and cruel but it must be
skilful in intrigue, ;

and the altar-cloths made into shirts for remembered that all our informants are writers
the soldiers. St. Valerian, bp. of Abbenza, who hated and dreaded himself and his nation
was expelled from that town. No one was both as heretics and enemies. With every
allowed to receive him into their house or allowance for Salvian's rhetoric (de Guber-
permit him to remain on their land, and he natione Dei, Migne, Patr. Lat. liii-), it
vii. in
was long obliged to lie by the roadside. At must be admitted that his description of
Regia the Catholics had ventured at Easter the morals of the Vandals and those of the
GEORGIUS GEORGIUS 387
dissolute Carthaginians show the former in a George earnestly appealed to Macedonius of
more favourable light than the latter. Constantinople and other bishops, who were
Genseric's name is variously spelt Gizericus, visiting Basil at Ancyra to consecrate a
Gaisericus, Geisericus, and Zinzirichus. The newly erected church, to lose no time in sum-
sources for the above account are the Chron- moning a council to condemn the Anomoean
icles of Prosper and Idatius (in Migne, Pair. heresy and eject Aetius. His letter is pre-
Lat. li.) Procopius, de Bella Vandalico, i. 3-7
; ;
served by Sozomen (H. E. iv. 13 ; Labbe,
Isidorus, de Regibus Gothorum (Isid. 0pp. vii. Concil. ii. 790). At Seleucia, in 359, when the
130-133. in Migne, Pair. Lat. Ixxxiii. 1076) ;
semi-Arian party was split into two, George
and Victor Vitensis, de Persecutione Vandalica, headed the more numerous faction opposed to
i. (in Migne, Pair. Lat. Iviii.). Gibbon, cc. that of Acacius and Eudoxius, whom, with
xxxiii. xxxvi. and xxxvii., may also be con- their adherents, they deposed (Socr. H. E. ii.
sulted and Ruinart's dissertation in his
; 40). On the expulsion of Anianus from the
appendix to Victor Vitensis, and Ceillier, see of Antioch, George was mainly responsible
Histoire des auteurs sacres, x. c. 28. [f.d.] for the election of Meletius, believing him to
Georgius (3), bp. of Laodicea ad mare in hold the same opinions as himself. He was
Syria Prima (335-347), who took part in the speedily undeceived, for on his first entry into
Trinitarian controversies of the 4th cent. At Antioch Meletius startled his hearers by an
first an ardent admirer of the teaching of unequivocal declaration of the truth as laid
Arius and associated with Eusebius of Nice- down at Nicaea. Indignant at being thus
media, he subsequently became a semi-Arian, entrapped, George and his fellows lost no time
but seems ultimately to have united with the in securing the deposition and expulsion of a
Anomoeans, whose uncompromising opponent bishop of such uncompromising orthodoxy
he had once been, and to have died professing (Theod. H. E. ii. 31 ; Philost. H. E. v. i ;

their tenets (Newman, Arians, pt. ii. p. 275). Socr. H. E. ii. 44 ; Soz. H. E. iv. 28). Greg-
He was a native of Alexandria. In early life ory Nyssen mentions a letter by George
he devoted himself with considerable distinc- relating to Arius {in Eunom. i. 28), and Soc-
tion to the study of philosophy (Philost. H. E. rates quotes a panegyric composed by him
viii. 17). He was ordained presbyter by on the Arian Eusebius of Emesa, who was his
Alexander, bp. of Alexandria (zT). Eus. Vit. intimate friend and resided with him at
;

Const, iii. 62). Having gone to Antioch, he Laodicea after his expulsion from Emesa and
endeavoured to mediate between Arius and by whose intervention at Antioch he was
the Catholic body. To the Arians he shewed restored to his see (Socr. H. E. i. 24, ii. 9).
how, by a sophistical evasion based on I. Cor. He was also the author of some treatises
xi. 12 wavra €k rod GfoC), they might against heresy, especially that of the Mani-
(to. 8k
accept the orthodox test Qebv sk Oeov cheans (Theod. Haer. Fab. i. 28 Phot. Bibl. ;

(Socr. H. E. ii. 45 Athan. de Synod, p. 887). c. 85


;
Niceph. H. E. vi. 32). ; [e.v.]
The attempt at reconciliation completely Georgius (4), commonly called of Cappa-
failed, and resulted in his deposition and ex- docia (Athan. Ep. ad Episc. 7) Arian ;

communication by Alexander, on the ground intruding bp. of Alexandria (356-361). He


of false doctrine and of the open and habitual was born, according to Ammianus Marcellinus,
irregularities of his life (Athan. ib. p. 886 at Epiphania in Cilicia (xxii. 11, 3), and, if so,
;

Apol. ii. p. 728 de Fug. p. 718 Theod. H. E. must have been Cappadocian only by descent.
; ;

ii. 9). Athanasius styles him " the most Gregory Nazianzen describes him as not purely
wicked of all the Arians," reprobated even free-born (Oral. xxi. 16), and as " unlearned,"
by his own party (de Fug. 718). After his but he undoubtedly collected a librarj^ which
excommunication at Alexandria, he sought Julian, no bad judge, describes as " very large
admission among the clergy of Antioch, but and ample," richly stored with philosophical,
was steadily rejected by Eustathius (Athan. rhetorical, and historical authors, and with
Hist. Arian. p. 812). On this he retired to various works of " Galilean " or Christian
Arethusa, where he acted as presbyter, and, theology (Epp. 9, 36). In Feb. 356, after
on the expulsion of Eustathius, was wel- Athanasius had retired from Alexandria in
comed back to Antioch by the dominant consequence of the attack on his church, which
Arian faction. He was appointed bp. of all but ended in his seizure, he heard that
Laodicea on the death of the Arian Theo- George was to be intruded into his throne, as
dotus (Athan. de Synod, p. 886; Or. i. p. 290 Gregory had been 16 years previously. George
;

Soz. H. E. vi. 25). As bishop he took a arrived in Alexandria, escorted by soldiers,


leading part in the successive synods sum- during Lent 356 [de Fug. 6). His installation
moned by the Arian faction against Athan- was a signal for new inflictions on Alexandrian
asius. He was at the councils of Tyre and church-people. " After Easter week," says
Jerusalem in 335 (Athan. Apol. ii. p. 728 Athanasius [ib.), "virgins were imprisoned,
;

Eus. Vit. Const, iv. 43), and that of the bishops led away in chains " (some 26 are
Dedication at Antioch in 341 (Soz. H. E. iii. named in Hist. Arian. 72) " attacks made ;

5). Fear kept him from the council of Sardica on houses " and on the first Sunday;

in 347, where the bishops unanimously de- evening after Pentecost a number of people
posed him and many others as having been who had met for prayer in a secluded place
previously condemned by Alexander, and as were cruelly maltreated by the commander,
holding Arian opinions (Theod. H. E. iii. 9 Sebastian, a " pitiless Manichean," for refusing
;

Labbe, Concil. ii. 678 Athan. Apol. ii. p. to communicate with George.
;

765 ; de Fug. p. 718). Of this deposition The intruding bishop was a man of resolu-
George took no heed, and in 358, when Eudox- tion and action (Soz. iii. 7). Gregory of
ius, the newly appointed bp. of Antioch, Nazianzus, who disparages his abilities, admits
openly sided with Aetius and the Anomoeans, that he was like a " hand " to the Arians, while
"

388 GEORGIUS GEORGIUS



he employed an eloquent prelate probably

Acacius as a " tongue." He belonged to the
he had persecuted and mocked the pagans
(Socr. iii. 2 Maff. Frag.
; ; Ammian.), who
Acacian section of the party, and was con- now, being officially informed that there was
sequently obnoxious to the semi-Arians, who an emperor who worshipped the gods, felt that
" deposed him " in the council of Seleucia. He the gods could at last be avenged. The shout
allowed the notorious adventurer Aetius, arose, " Away with George " ! and " in a
founder of the Anomoeans or ultra-Arians, to moment," says the Fragmentist, they threw
ofiiciate as deacon at Alexandria, after having him into prison, with Diodorus and Dracon-
been ordained, as Athanasius tells us (de tius, the master of the mint, who had over-
Synod. 38), by Leontius of Antioch, although thrown a pagan altar which he found standing
he afterwards " compelled " the Arian bishops there (Ammian.). The captives were kept
of Egypt to sign the decree of the Acacian in irons until the morning of Dec. 24. Then
synod of Constantinople of 360 against Aetius the pagan mob again assembled, dragged them
(Philost. iii. 2). He induced Theodore, bp. forth with " horrible shouts " of triumph, and
of Oxyrynchus, to submit to degradation from kicked them to death. They flung the
the ministry and to be reordained by him as mangled body of George on a camel, which
an Arian bishop (Lib. Marcell. et Faustini, they led through every part of the city,
Sirmond. i. 135)- He managed to keep the dragging the two other corpses along with
confidence of Constantius, who congratulated ropes, and eventually burned the remains on
the Alexandrians on having abandoned such the shore, casting the ashes into the sea.
"grovelling teachers" as Athanasius and The Arians, of course, regarded George as
entrusted their " heavenward aspirations " to a martyr ; and Gibbon took an evident
" " pleasure in representing " the renowned St.
the guidance of the most venerable George
(Athan. Apol. to Const. 30, 31). But George George of England " as the Alexandrian-
was far from recommending his form of usurper " transformed " into a heroic soldier-
Christianity either to the orthodox or to the saint ; but bp. Milner {Hist. Inquiry into the
pagans of Alexandria. " He was severe," Existence and Character of St. George, 1792)
says Sozomen, " to the adherents of Athan- and others have shewn that this assumption
asius," not only forbidding the exercise of their of identity is manifestly false, the St. George
worship, but " inflicting imprisonment and who is patron saint of England being of an
scourges on men and women after the fashion earlier date, though of that saint's life,
of a tyrant " ;
while, towards all alike, " he country, or date we have no certain informa-
wielded his authority with more violence than tion, such traditions as we possess being given
belonged to the episcopal rank and character." in the next art. [w.b.]
He was " hated by the magistrates for his Georgius (43), M., Apr. 23 {MeyaXofxdprvs,
supercilious demeanour, by the people for his Bas. Men.) traditionally the patron saint of
;

tyranny" (Soz. iv. 10, 30). He stood well England, a military tribune and martyr under
with Constantius, who was guided theologic- Diocletian at Nicomedia, a.d. 303. He was a
ally by the Acacians ; and it was easy for native of Cappadocia ancl of good birth. Some
the " pope " of Alexandria to embitter his time before the outbreak of the great perse-
sovereign (as Julian says he did, Ep. 10) cution he accompanied his mother to Lydda,
against the Alexandrian community, to name in Palestine, where she possessed property.
several of its members as disobedient subjects, As soon, however, as he heard of the publica-
and to suggest that its grand public buildings tion of the first edict (Feb. 23, 303), he re-
ought by rights to pay tax to the treasury turned to Nicomedia, where, as some think,
(Ammian. etc.). He shewed himself a keen he was the celebrated person who tore down
man of business, " buying up the nitre-works, the imperial proclamation, and then suffered
the marshes of papyrus and reed, and the salt death by roasting over a slow fire (Eus. H. E.
lakes " (Epiph. Haer. Ixxvi.). He manifested viii.5). [Diocletian.] The earliest historical
his anti-pagan zeal by arbitrary acts and testimony to the existence and martyrdom
insulting speeches, procured the banishment of St. George is an inscription in a church at
of Zeno, a prominent pagan physician (Julian, Ezr'a or Edhr'a, in S. Syria, copied by Burck-
Ep. 45), prevented the pagans from offering hardt and Porter, and discussed by Mr. Hogg
sacrifices and celebrating their national feasts in two papers before the Royal Society of
(Soz. iv. 30), brought Artemius, " duke " of Literature {Transactions, vi. 292, vii. 106).
Egypt, much given to the destruction of idols This inscription states that the building had
(Theod. iii. 18), with an armed force into the been a heathen temple, but was dedicated as
superb temple of Serapis at Alexandria, which a church in honour of the great mart>T St.
was forthwith stripped of images, votive George, in a year which Hogg, by an acute
offerings, and ornaments (Julian, I.e. ; Soz. argument, fixes as 346. (For another view,
I.e.). On Aug. 29, 358, the people broke into however, which assigns the inscription to 499,
the church of St. Dionysius, where George was see Bockh's Corp. Inscript. Graec. ed. Kirch-
then residing, and the soldiers rescued him hoff, t. iv. No. 8627.) His name occurs again
from their hands with difficulty and after in another inscription in the church of Shaka,
hard fighting. On Oct. 2 he was obliged to 20 miles E. of Ezr'a, which Hogg dates
leave the city ; and the " Athanasians A.D. 367. (Bockh, I.e. No. 8609, cf. 8630 for
;

occupied the churches from Oct. 11 to other instances of transformations of heathen


Dec. 24, when they were again ejected by temples into churches and hospitals in the
Sebastian. Probably George returned soon 4th and 5th cent., see Bockh, I.e. 8645,
after he had quitted the Seleucian council, i.e. 8647.) The council assembled at Rome by
in Nov. 359. The news of Julian's accession pope Gelasius, a.d. 494 or 496 (Hefele,
arrived at Alexandria Nov. 30, 361. George Concil. i. 610, iii. 219, ed. Paris, 1869), con-
was in the height of his pride and power : demned the Acts of St. George, together with
GEORGIUS GEORGIUS 389
those of Cyricus and Julitta, as corrupted bp. of Genoa, a.d. 1280, and in the breviary
by heretics, but expressly asserted that the service for St. George's Day, till revised by
saints themselves were real martyrs and pope Clement VIII. Thence it became the
worthy of all reverence (cf. Pitra, Spicil. foundation of the story as told in Johnson's
Salesmen, iv. 391, for a repetition, three cen- Historie of the Seven Champions of Christendom,
turies later in the East, of this condemnation and the old ballad of St. George and the Dragon,
by the patriarch Nicephorus, in his Constit. reprinted in the third volume of Percy's
EccL). Thenceforward the testimonies to his Reliques, many features of which Spenser
existence rapidly thicken, but decrease in reproduces in his Faery Queen. Busbecq in
value. Gregory of Tours in the 6th cent, the i6th cent, found in the heart of Asia Minor
mentions him as highly celebrated in France, a legend of the Turkish hero Chederles, to
while in the East his cultus became universally whom were ascribed exploits similar to those
established (cf. Fleury, H. E. xxxiv. 46) and of St. George (Ep. i, pp. 93, 95, ed. 1633), and
churches were erected in all directions in his he found Georgian Christians venerating above
honour, one of the most celebrated being that every image that of St. George on horseback,
built, probably by Justinian, over his tomb at regarding him as having conquered the evil
Lydda, whither his relics had been transferred one (Ep. 3, p. 209).
after hismartyrdom. This church still
(For an engraving of it, see Thom-

Connexion with England. St. George's story
exists. was well known in England from the 7th cent.,
son's Land and Book, ii. 292 ; cf. Robinson's most probably through the Roman mission-
Biblical Researches, iii. 51-55, with Le Quien, aries sent by Gregory. Arculf, the early
Oriens Christian, iii. 1271, for full particulars traveller, when returning to his bishopric in
of St. George's connexion with Lydda.) France, was carried northward to lona, c. 699,
Another is at Thessalonica described in
; where he told the monks the story of St.
Texier and PuUan, Byzantine Architecture, George, whence, through Adamnan and Bede,
pp. 132-142, where strong reasons are given it became widely known in Britain. St. George
for assigning its erection to Constantine (cf. has a place in the Anglo-Saxon ritual of Dur-
Procopius, de Aedif. iii. 4, ed. Bonn). ham assigned to the early part of the qth cent.,
The Medieval Legends. —The Ariaris of pub. by the Surtees Society a.d. 1840, and
the 5th cent, seem to have corrupted his among the publications of the Percy Society
acts for their own purposes. Their story is we have an Anglo-Saxon Passion of St. George,
that he was arrested by Datianus, emperor j
the work of Aelfric, archbp. of York a.d. 1020-
of Rome, or, according to others, of Persia, 105 1, ed. by Hardwick a.d. 1850, in whose
by whom he was in vain ordered to sacrifice preface is much interesting information on
to Apollo. The magician Athanasius under- this point. His special fame, however, in this
took to confound the saint. After various country arose immediately out of the early
attempts the magician was converted and Crusades. William of Malmesbury (Gesta
baptized, as well as the queen Alexandra. Reg. Angl. ed. Sir T. D. Hardy, ii. 559) tells us
After many miracles and various tortures, St. that, when the Crusaders were hard pressed
George was beheaded. It is strange that, by the Saracens at the battle of Antioch, June
notwithstanding the decrees of Rome and 28, 1089, the soldiers were encouraged by
Constantinople, this Arian corruption became seeing " the martyrs George and Demetrius
the basis of all subsequent legends, and even hastily approaching from the mountainous
found its way into the hymns of St. John districts, hurling darts against the enemy, but
Damascene in honour of St. George (Mai. assisting the Franks " (cf. Gibbon, cap. Iviii. ;

Rom. t. ix. p. 729


Spicil. Ceillier, xii. 89).
; Michaud's Hist, of Crusades, i. 173, ed. Lond. ;

The additionof a horse and a dragon to the on the military fame of St. Demetrius see
story arose out of the imaginations of medie- Bockh, Corp. Inscrip. iv. 8642 ; Du Cange,
val writers. The dragon represents the devil, Gloss, i. 974 ; Texier, op. cit. pp. 123-132).
suggested by St. George's triumph over him This timely apparition at the very crisis of
at his martyrdom (cf. Eus. Vita Constant, iii. the campaign led the Crusaders, among whom
3). When the race of the Bagratides as- were a large contingent of Normans under
cended the throne of Georgia at the end of Robert, son of William the Conqueror, to
the 6th cent., they adopted St. George slaying adopt St. George as their patron. During
the Dragon as part of their arms (Malan, the campaigns of Richard I. in Palestine, St.
Hist, of Georgian Ch. pp. 15, 29). The George appeared to him and so became a
horse was added during the Frankish occupa- special favourite with the Normans and
tion of Constantinople as suitable, according English (Itin. of Richard I. in Chron. of
to medieval ideas, to his rank and character Crusades, ed. Bohn, p. 239). In 1222 a
as a military martjT. St. George was de- national council at Oxford ordered his feast
picted on a horse as early as 1227, according to be kept as a lesser holiday throughout
to Nicephorus Gregoras {Hist. Byzant. viii. 5), England. He was not, however, formally
where will be found a curious story concerning adopted as patron saint of England till the
a picture in the imperial palace at Constan- time of Edward III., who founded St. George's
tinople, of St. George mounted upon a horse, chapel at Windsor in 1348. In 1349 Edward
which neighed in the most violent style when- i
joined battle with the French near Calais,
ever an enemy was about to make a successful when, " moved by a sudden impulse," says
j

assault upon the city. The earliest trace we Thomas of Walsingham, " he drew his sword
can now find of the full-grown legend of St. I

with the exclamation. Ha ! St. Edward, Ha !

George and the dragon, and the king's daugh- St. George, and routed the French " (cf Smith's
.

ter Sabra, whom he delivered, is in the Student's Hume, cap. x. § 8). From that time
Historia Loinbardica, popularly called the St. George replaced St. Edward the Confessor
Golden Legend, of Jacobus de Voragine, arch- as patron of England. In 1350, according to
390 GERMANUS GERMANUS
some authorities, the order of the Garter was imously elected, and consecrated on Sun. July
instituted under his patronage, and in 1415, 7, 418. His wife became to him as a sister ;

according to the Constitutions of archbp. he distributed his property to the poor he ;

Chichely, St. George's Day was made a major became a severe ascetic, and, as his biographer
double feast, and ordered to be observed like Constantius says, a " persecutor of his body,"
Christmas Day. In the first Prayer Book of abstaining from salt, oil, and even from
Edward VI. St. George's feast was a red-letter vegetables, from wine, excepting a small
day, and had a special epistle and gospel. quantity much diluted on Christmas Day or
This was changed in the next revision (Ash- Easter Day, and from wheat bread, instead
mole, Order of the Garter Anstis, Register
; ;
of which he ate barley bread with a prelimin-
Pott, Antiquities of Windsor and History of ary taste of ashes [cinerem praelibavit). He
Order of Garter, a.d. 1749). The influence of wore the same hood and tunic in all seasons,
the Crusades also led to St. George becoming and slept on ashes in a framework of boards.
the patron of the republic of Genoa, the king- " Let any one speak his mind," says Constan-
doms of Aragon and Valencia, and to the to whom some details
tius, of German's life
institutions of orders of knighthood under his must have come down not free from exag-
name all over Europe (cf. A A. SS. Boll. Apr. geration, " but I positively assert that the
iii. 160). In N. Syria his day is still observed blessed German endured a long martyrdom."
as a great festival (Lyde, Secret Sects of N. Withal he was hospitable, and gave his guests
Syria, Lond. 1853, p. 19). a good meal, though he would not share it.
Controversy. —
The consentient testimony of He founded a monastery outside Auxerre, on
all Christendom till the Reformation attested the opposite bank of the Yonne, often crossing
the existence of St. George. Calvin first in a boat to visit the abbat and brethren.
questioned it. In his Institutes, lib. iii. cap. Pelagianism had been rife in its founder's
20, § 27, when arguing against invocation of native island of Britain and the British
;

saints, he ridiculed those who esteem Christ's clergy, unable to refute the heretics, requested
intercession as of no value unless " accedant help from the church, we may say from their
Georgius aut Hippolytus aut similes larvae," mother church, of Gaul. Accordingly a
where, unfortunately for himself, he places numerous synod unanimously sent to Britain
Hippolytus in the class of ghosts or phantoms German and Lupus, bp. of Troyes, both going
together with St. George. Dr. Reynolds, the more readily becauseof thelabour involved.
early in the 17th cent., was the first to confuse So says Constantius, who is followed closely by
the orthodox martyr of Lydda with the Arian Bede (i. 17). But Prosper of Aquitaine, a con-
bp. of Alexandria. [Georgius (i).] Against temporary, in his Chronicle for a.d. 429, says
him Dr. Heylin argued in an exhaustive that pope Celestine, " at the suggestion of the
treatise (Hist, of St. George of Cappadocia), deacon Palladius, sent German as his repre-
giving (pp. 164-166) a very full list of all sentative " (vice sua) into Britain and in his
;

earlier authors who had referred to St. George, contra Collatorem, written c. 432, speaks of
including a quotation from a reputed treatise Celestine as " taking pains to keep the Roman
by St. Ambrose, Liber Praefationum, which is island " (Britain) "Catholic" (c. 21 or 24).
not now extant. The controversy was con- The truth probably lies in a combination of
tinued during the i8th cent. Dr. Milner wrote the pope's action with the councils, at any
in defence of the historical reality of St. rate as regards German. Lupus is not in-
George, provoked doubtless by Gibbon's well- —
cluded by Prosper of him evidently Celes-
known sneer in c. xxiii. of his history. See tine took no thought, but, we may reasonably
further Mart. Vet. Rom., Mart. Adon., Mart. believe, gave some special commission to
Usuard., which all fix his martyrdom at Dios- German either before (so Tillemont, Memoir es,
polis in Persia (cf. Herod, ed. Rawlinson, i. 72, xiv. 154) or at the time of the Gallic synod :

v. 49, vii. 72) Hogg, however, well suggests


;
it is not probable that, as Lingard supposes,
the Bithynian town of that name, which was the synod's commission was only to Lupus
in the Persian empire under Cyrus (Pasch. and German "sent" by the pope alone (Angl.
Chron. ed. Bonn, p. 510; Sym. Metaphrast. ;
Sax. Ch. i. 8).
Magdeburg. Centur. cent. iv. cap. xii. Ceillier, ; When the two prelates reached Nanterre
xi. 404, xii. 58, 89, 297 Alban-Butler, Lives
; near Paris, German saw in the crowd which
of Saints Malan, Hist, of the Georgian Church,
;
met them the girl Genovefa, whom he bade
pp. 28, 51, 54, 72 E. A. ;Wallis Budge, The live as one espoused to Christ, and who became
Martyrdom and Miracles of St. George of Cap- " St. Genevieve of Paris." Arrived in Britain,
padocia : the Coptic texts ed. with an Eng. the bishops preached the doctrines of grace in
trans., Lond. 1888). [g.t.s.I churches and on the country roads with great
Germanus (8), St., bp. of Auxerre, born effect ;till the Pelagian leaders challenged
probably c. 378, at Auxerre, near the S. border them to a discussion, apparently near Veru-
of what was afterwards Champagne. The 1am. A great multitude assembled the two :

parents of German caused him to be baptized bishops, appealing to Scripture in support of


and well educated. He went to Rome, the Catholic position, silenced their opponents,
studied for the bar, practised as an advocate and the shouts of the audience hailed their
before the tribunal of the prefect, on his return victory. German and Lupus then visited the
married a lady named Eustachia, and rose to reputed tomb of the British protomartyr
be one of the six dukes of Gaul, each of whom Alban and Constantius adds the famous tale
;

governed a number of provinces (Gibbon, ii. of the Alleluia Victory. The Britons were
320), Auxerre being included in German's menaced by Picts and Saxons German and ;

district. German, having been ordained and Lupus encouraged them to resist, catechized
nominated as his successor by Amator, bp. and baptized the still heathen majority in their
of
Auxerre, was, on the latter's death, unan- army, and then, shortly after Easter 430,
GERMANUS GERVASIUS 391

stationing them in a narrow glen, bade them at France, iii. 270). This church was said to have
the invaders' approach repeat thrice the been consecrated by St. Germanus on the day
Paschal Alleluia. The Britons sent the shout Childebert died (Dec. 23, 558). Childebert's
ringing through the defile ;the enemy was successor Clotairewas, according to Venantius
seized with panic, and " faith without the Fortunatus, at first not equally amenable, but
sword won a bloodless victory." a sickness changed his disposition. Ger-
In 447 German was again entreated by manus's death is variously dated 575, 576, and
British churchmen to aid them against 577. He was buried in an oratorium near the
Pelagianism. He took with him Severus, bp. vestibule of the church of St. Vincent and ;

of Treves, a disciple of Lupus, and having on in 754 his body was removed with great
his way vindicated Genovefa against calum- ceremony into the chiu-ch itself, in the
niators, landed in Britain, triumphed again presence of Pippin and his son Charles the
over the Pelagians, and procured their Great, then a child. The church henceforth
banishment from the island. Welsh tradi- was called St. Germain des Pres.
tions record his many activities on behalf of There is extant by St. Germanus a treatise
the British church. They lay the scene of the on the Mass, or exposition of the old Gallic
Alleluia victory at Maes-garmon near Mold ;
Liturgy [Patr. Lat. Ixxii. 89 cf. Ceillier, xi.
;

they speak of colleges founded by German, of 308 seq., for the reasons for ascribing it to
national customs traced to his authority and him). Among his writings is also generally
;

although much of this is legendary and the counted the privilege which he granted to his
stories in Nennius about his relations with monastery exempting it from all episcopal
king Vortigern apocryphal, he probably did jurisdiction (c. 565). Its authenticity has
more for British Christianity than Constantius been vehemently attacked and defended (see
records. He had no sooner returned home Migne, Patr. Lat. Ixxii. 81 n. and the authorities
than another occasion for his humane inter- there referred to). St. Germanus's Life was
vention arose. The Armoricans, whose written by Venantius Fortunatus, his con-
country had not yet acquired (through British temporary and friend, but the work is little
immigration) the name of Brittany, were in else than a string of miracles. It may be
chronic revolt against the empire, hoping to found in Mabillon's Acta SS. Ord. S. Bened.
obtain favourable terms for Armorica. Ger- i.234-245 (Paris, 1668-1701). See also Boll.
man set forth at once for Italy, and on June Acta SS. Mai. vi. 774 sqq. Gall. Christ, vii.
;

19, 448, reached Milan ;


proceeding to 18-21 Mansi, ix. 747, 805, 867, 869; and, for
;

Ravenna, he obtained pardon for the Armori- the monastery, the Dissertatio of Ruinartius,
cans, but unfortunately news came that they in Bouquet, ii. 722. [s.a.b.]
had again revolted, and his mission proved in Gervasius June 19 (Us.) Oct. 14 (Bas.
(1), ;

vain. German was soon afterwards taken ill. Menol.). Martyr with Protasius at Milan,
His lodging overflowed with visitors a choir
; under Nero. These two brothers were sons
kept up ceaseless psalmody by his bedside. of Vitalis, whose martyrdom at Ravenna and
He died July 31, 448, having been bishop 30 mythical acts are recorded in Mart. Adon.
years and 25 days. His body was embalmed, Apr. 28. After 300 years, and when their
and a magnificent funeral journey to Gaul memory had entirely faded, God is said to have
attested the reverence of the court. He was revealed their place of burial to St. Ambrose
buried in a chapel near Auxerre on Oct. i. in a dream. [Ambrosius.] The empress
Constantius's Life is in Surius, de Probatts Justina was striving to obtain one of the
Sanctorum Historiis, vol. iv. A metrical Life churches of Milan for Arian worship, and help
and a prose account of his " miracles," both was needed to sustain the orthodox in their
by a monk named Hereric, are in Acta Sanc- opposition to the imperial authority. Just at
torum, July 31. [w.B.] this time a new and splendid basilica was
Germanus (18) [Germain), St., 20th bp. of awaiting consecration. The people, as a kind
Paris, born at Autun of parents of rank named of orthodox demonstration, wished it conse-
Eleutherius and Eusebia (c. 496), and educated crated with the same pomp and ceremonial as
at Avalon and Luzy (Lausia). In due time had been used for another new church near
he was ordained deacon, and three years later the Roman Gate. Ambrose consented, if he
priest. He was next made abbat of the should have some new relics to place therein.
monastery of St. Symphorian at Autun, by He therefore ordered excavations to be made
bp. Nectarius. In 555, being present at Paris in the church of St. Nabor and St. Felix, near
on some mission to Childebert, when that see the rails which enclosed their tomb. The
was vacant by the death of Eusebius, he was search was rewarded by the discovery of the
raised to the archbishopric. His great object bodies of " two men of wondrous size, such as
seems to have been to check the unbridled ancient times produced " (Amb. Ep. xxii. § 2),
licence of the Frank kings, and to ameliorate with all their bones entire and very much
the misery produced by constant civil war. blood. They were removed to the church of
In 557 he was present at the third council of St. Fausta, and the next day to the new
Paris, and appears to have exercised consider- Ambrosian church, where they were duly
able influence over Childebert. whose edict enshrined. At each different stage St. Am-
against pagan revelry on holy days may have brose delivered impassioned and fanciful
been due to St. Germanus (Migne, Pair. Lat. harangues. In that on their enshrinement he
Ixxii. 1121), and likewise the building by claims that they had already expelled demons,
Childebert of the church of St. Vincent to and restored to sight a blind butcher, one
receive the stole of that martyr which he had Severus, who was cured by touching the pall
brought from Spain. (See the charter given that covered the relics. The Arians ridiculed
by Almoin, de Gest. Franc, ii. 20, ed. Jac. du the matter, asserting that Ambrose had hired
Brevi, Paris, 1602, and cf. Hist. Litt. de la persons to feign themselves demoniacs. The
392 GILDAS GILDAS
whole story has afforded copious matter for lived, and secondly, whether there were more
criticism. Mosheim (cent. iv. pt. ii. c. 3, § 8), Gildases than one. Though he is mentioned
Gibbon (c. xxvii.), Isaac Taylor {Ancient by name, and his writings quoted from by
Christianity, vol. ii. 242-272), consider the Bede, Alcuin, William of Newburgh, Geoffrey
thing a trick got up by the contrivance and of Monmouth, and Giraldus Cambrensis, there
at the expense of St. Ambrose himself. Two is no memoir of him written within several
distinct points demand attention : ist, the centuries of his supposed date, and the two
finding of the bodies 2nd, the reputed
; oldest, on which the others are based, are
miracles. The discovery of the bodies may ordinary specimens of the unhistorical tone of
have been neither a miracle nor a trick. mind of the nth and 12th cents. Tosurmount
Churches were frequently built in cemeteries, the chronological and historical difficulties,
and excavation might easily chance upon Ussher, Ware, Bale, Pitseus, Golgan, and
bodies. Some, moreover, have fixed Diocle- O'Conor have imagined at least two of the
tian's persecution as the time of their martyr- name, perhaps even four or six, about the 5th
dom, and St. Ambrose, as the official custodian and 6th cents. These have received distin-
of the church records, might therefore have guishing designations, and thus have obtained
some knowledge of their resting-place, and in a recognized position in history. But the
times of intense theological excitement men more probable and more generally received
have often imputed to dreams or supernatural opinion is that there is but one Gildas, who
assistance that for which, under calmer cir- could not have lived earlier than about the
cumstances, they would account in a more end of the 5th cent, or later than that of the
commonplace way. It is hardly possible to 6th. The oldest authority is Vita Gildae,
read through the epistle of St. Ambrose to his auctore monacho Rnyensi anonymo, ed. by the
sister Marcellina {Ep. xxii.), in which he gives Bollandists {Acta SS. Jan. 29, iii. 573 seq.),
an account of the discovery, and still imagine and attributed to the nth cent, or earlier.
that such genuine enthusiasm could go hand The other was written by Caradoc of Llan-
in hand with conscious knavery and deceit. carvan in the 12th cent. (Engl. Hist. Soc.
There remains the question of the miracles to 1838). (For pub. and MS. Lives see Hardy's
which St. Ambrose and St. Augustine testify Descript. Cat. i. pt. i. 151-156, pt. ii. 799-)
{de Civit. Dei, xxii. 8;Confess, ix. 7 Ser. 286
; With what seems more or less a common
and 318). These were of two kinds: the groundwork of fact, these Lives have much
restoration of demoniacs and the healing of a that is irreconcilable. " Nor need this seem
blind man. As to the demoniacs, we cannot so very strange," says O'Hanlon {Irish Saints,
decide. At times of religious excitement such i. 473-474), " when both accounts had been
cases have occurred, and can be accounted for drawn up several centuries after the life-
on purely natural grounds. They belong to time of Gildas, and when they had been
an obscure region of psychological phenomena. written in different centuries and in separate
The case of the blind man, whose cure is countries. The diversities of chronological
reported by St. Augustine, then resident at events, and of persons hardh' contempora-
Milan, as well as by St. Ambrose, stands on a neous, will only enable us to infer that the
different footing, and is the one really import- sources of information were occasionally
ant point of the narrative with which Taylor doubtful, while the various coincidences of
fails effectively to grapple. We must observe, narrative seem to warrant a conclusion that
also, in favour of the miracle that St. Ambrose both tracts were intended to chronicle the life
called immediate attention to it, and that no of one and the same person. It deserves
one seems to have challenged the fact of the remark, however, that " (quoting from Mon.
blindness or the reality of restoration to Hist. Brit. i. pt. i. 59, n.) " both are said to

sight ; and further Severus devoted himself have been born in Scotland. One was the
in consequence as a servant of the church son of Nau, the other of Cau the eldest son
:

wherein the relics were placed, and continued [? brother] of one was Huel, of the other Cuil.
such for more than 20 years. On the other Both lives have stories of a bell, both Gildases
hand, we have no means of judging as to the go to Ireland, both go to Rome, and both
nature of the disease in the man's eyes. He build churches. The monk of Ruys quotes
was not born blind, but had contracted the several passages from Gildas's de Excidio, and
disease, being a butcher by trade. He might assigns it to him and Caradoc calls him
:

therefore have only been affected in some such '


Historiographus Britonum,' and say that he
way as powerful nervous excitement might wrote Historiae de Regibus Britonum.'" Bp.
cure, but for which he and St. Ambrose would Nicolson {Eng. Hist. Libr. 32, 3rd ed.) con-
naturally account by the miraculous power of cludes that Gildas " was monk of Bangor
the martyrs. In the Criterion of Miracles, by about the middle of the 6th cent. a sorrowful ;

bp. Douglas (pp. 130-160, ed. 1803), there are spectator of the miseries and almost utter ruin
many acute observations on similar reputed of his countrymen by a people under whose
miracles in the i8th cent. Mart. Rom. Vet., banner they had hoped for peace." Those
Adon., Bedae, Usuard. ;Kal. Carthag. Kal.
; who believe there was only one Gildas do not
Front. ;Tillem. Mem. ii. 78, 498 Fleury,
; entirely agree as to his dates, one for his birth
H. E. viii. 49, xviii. 47 Ceill. v. 386, 490, ix.
; being sought between a.d. 484 and 520, and
340. [g.t.s.] one for his death between a.d. 565 and 602.
Gildas [Gildasius, Gild us, Gillas), com- In his de Excidio Britanniae he says he was
memorated Jan. 29. In medieval Lives born in the year of " obsessionis Badonici
Gildas appears in a well-defined individuality, montis " (c. 26). The Annates Cambriae place
but a more critical view detects so many the " bellum Badonis " in 516, and the An-
anachronisms and historical defects that it nales Tigernachi Gildas's death in 570 these :

has been questioned, first, whether he ever dates are probably nearest the truth. By
GLYCERIUS GLYCERIUS 393
those who suppose there were two or more to rescue their daughters from such disgrace
bearing the same name, " Albanius " is placed were driven away by Glycerius with contume-
in the 5th cent. (425-512, Ussher), and " Ba- ly, and he carried off his whole band to a
donicus " in the 6th (520-570, Ussher). neighbouring town, of which an unidentified
The writing ascribed to Gildas was long Gregory was bishop. Several of Basil's letters
regarded as one treatise, de Excidio Britan- turned on this matter, the further issue of
tiiae but is now usually divided into the
; which is not known. [e.v.]
Historia Gildae and Epistola Gildae. The Glycerius (8), emperor of the West, after-
former is a bare recital of the events of British wards bp. of Salona. In Mar. 473, being then
history under the Romans, and between their comes domesticorum, he assumed the imperial
withdrawal and his own time the latter a
;
title at Ravenna in succession to Olybrius ;

querulous, confused, and lengthy series of but the emperor of the East, Leo I. the
bitter invectives in the form of a declamatory Thracian, set up Julius Nepos, who was pro-
epistle addressed to the Britons, and relating claimed at Ravenna late in 473 or early in
specially to five kings, " reges sed t>Tannos," 474, and marched against Glycerius and took
named Constantinus, Aurelius, Conan, Vorti- him prisoner at Portus. (See art. Glycerius
porus, Cuneglasus and Maglocunus.* Many, in D. of G. and R. Biogr.) Glycerius has been
though probably without quite sufficient reckoned bp. of Portus, of Milan, and of
reason, regard the latter as the work of a later Salona. The Chronicon of Marcellinus Comes
writer, and as intended in the ecclesiastical under a.d. 474 states that Glycerius " imperio
differences of the 7th and 8th cents, for purely expulsus, in portu urbis Romae ex Caesare
polemical purposes, while others would place episcopus ordinatus est, et obiit " (Patr. Lat.
it even later still. See useful notes on both li. 931)
; on the strength of which he has been
sides in Notes and Queries, 4th ser. i. 171, 271, named Isp. of Portus, as by Paulus Diaconus,
51 r, and on the side of genuineness and who writes " Portuensis episcopus ordina-
:

authenticity. Hist. lit. de la France, t. iii. tur " (Hist. Misc. lib. xv. in Patr. Lat. xcv.
280 seq. Bolland. Acta SS. Jan. 29, iii. 566- 973 b). Cappelletti and Ughelli (who calls
582 ; Colgan, Acta SS. 176-203, 226-228 ;
him Gulcerius) assign him to that see between
Lanigan, Eccl. Hist. Ir. i. c. 9 ;Ussher, Brit. Petrus and Herennius (Ug. Hal. Sac. i. 11 1 ;

Eccl. Ant. cc. 13-17, and Ind. Chron. Wright,


;
Capp. Le Chiese d' Hal. i. 497). Evagrius, on
Biog. Brit. Lit. Aug. -Sax. per. 115-135. See the other hand, relates (H. E. ii. 16) that
Haddon and Stubbs, Councils, etc. vol. i. pp. Nepos appointed Glycerius bp. of the Romans
44-107 Th. Mommsen (Man. Ger.)
; Diet, of
; ii 'SdXwvas, scarcely, however, intending to
Nat. Biog. vol. xxi. An Eng. trans, of Gildas's say, as Canisius understands him, that Gly-
workisin Bohn'sLib. (O. E. Chronicles). [j.g.I cerius was made bp. of Rome. He must mean
Glyoerius (5), a deacon in Cappadocia, who (wTiting as a Greek) that Glycerius was or-
caused Basil much annoyance by his extra- dained bp. for Salona by the Roman eccle-
vagant and disorderly proceedings c. 374. siastical authorities, and that his see belonged
Being a vigorous young man, well fitted for the to the Roman or western part of the empire
humbler offices of the church, and having and to that patriarchate rather than the
adopted the ascetic life, he was ordained Byzantine. Jornandes likewise states that
deacon by Basil, though to what church is Nepos " Glycerium ab imperio expellens, in
doubtful. It is variously given as Venesa, Salona Dalmatiae episcopum fecit " (Jorn. de
Veesa, Venata, and Synnasa. His elevation Reg. Succ. in Muratori, Rer. Hal. Script, t. i. p.
turned the young man's head. He at once 239 b). It is therefore best to understand
began to neglect the duties of his office, and with Canisius (note on the passage in Evag-
gathered about him a number of young women, rius, vid. Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi. pt. 2, p. 2546) that
partly by persuasion, partly by force, of whom the deposition of Glycerius took place at
he took the direction, styling himself their Portus, where at the same time he was ap-
patriarch, and adopting a dress in keeping pointed to Salona. Thus also Farlati (Hlyr.
with his pretensions. He was supported by Sac. ii. 117-120). The principality of Dal-
the offerings of his female followers, and Basil matia belonged to Nepos independently of the
charges him with adopting this spiritual imperial title. Thither he retired before his
directorship in order to get his living without successful competitor Orestes, and was
work. The wild and disorderly proceedings brought into contact once more with Glyce-
of Glycerius and his deluded adherents created rius. Photius {Biblioth. Cod. 78) mentions the
great scandal and caused him to be gravely now lost Byzantine History of Malchus the
admonished by his own presbvter, his chorepi- Sophist as stating that Nepos, having divested
scopus, and finally by Basil himself. Gly- Glycerius of his Caesarian authority and
cerius turned a deaf ear, and having swelled invaded " the empire of the Romans," or-
his fanatical band by a number of young men, dained him, made him a bishop, and finally
he one night hastily left the city with his whole perished by his m?ichmai\ons (insidiis petitits),
troop against the will of many of the girls. not " was assassinated," as stated by Gibbon.
The scandal of such a band wandering about Farlati assigns six years to his episcopate,
under pretence of religion, singing hymns, and placing his death in 480.
leaping and dancing in a disorderly fashion, The supposition that he was bp. of Milan
was increased by the fact that a fair was going rests on very slender ground. Ennodius, bp.
on, and the young women were exposed to the of Pavia, who dedicates short poems to several
rude jests of the rabble. Fathers who came successive bishops of Milan, inscribes one to
• Skene (Four Anc. Books
of Wales, i. 63, 64) re-
Glycerius, whom he places between Mar-
gards them as contemporary rulers, living, one in tinianus and Lazarus (carm. 82, in Patr. Lat.
Devon and Cornwall, two in Wales, and two probably Ixiii. 349) ; but there is nothing in the verses
in the N. of Ireland, to identify him with the ex-emperor. Enpo-
394 GNOSTICISM GNOSTICISM
dius, in his Life of Epiphaniiis, bp. of Pavia, was merely fanciful and speculative. And it
mentions the emperor Glycerins as shewing so may be said that deeply important as were
much veneration for that saint as to accept his some of the particular questions discussed in
intercession for some people in the diocese of the conflict between the church and Gnos-
Pavia, who had incurred the imperial dis- ticism, an even more important issue of that
pleasure (Ennod. Vit. Epiphan. in Patr. Lat. conflict was the decision of the method by
Ixiii. 219 a). These are the sole grounds on which religious knowledge was to be arrived
which Gibbon hazards, doubtfully, the state- at. The Gnostics generally held that the
ment (Decl. and Fall, vol. iv. p. 295, ed. Smith) Saviour effected redemption by making a
that Glycerins was promoted bv Orestes from revelation of knowledge, yet they but feebly
Salona to the archbishopric of Milan in reward attempted to connect historically their teach-
for his assassination of Nepos. [c.h.] ing with his what was derived from Him was
;

Gnosticism. The zeal with which a learner buried under elements taken freely from
commences the studv of ecclesiastical history heathen mythologies and philosophies, or
is not unfrequently damped at an early stage, springing from the mere fancy of the specula-
when he finds that, in order to know the tor, so that, if Gnosticism had triumphed, all
history of religious thought in the 2nd cent., that is distinctively Christian would have
he must make himself acquainted with specu- disappeared. In opposition to them, church
lations so wild and so baseless that it is irksome writers were led to emphasize the principle
to read them and difficult to believe that time that that alone is to be accounted true know-
was when acquaintance with them was count- ledge of things divine which can be shewn by
ed as what alone deserved the name of " know- historical tradition, written or oral, to have
ledge." But it would be a mistake to think been derived from the teaching of Christ and.
too disdainfully of those early heretics who go His apostles, a principle the philosophic
by the common name of Gnostics. In the justice of which must be admitted if Christ be
first place, it may be said in their excuse that owned as having filled the part in the enlight-
the problems which they undertook to solve enment of the world which orthodox and
were among the most difficult with which the Gnostics alike attributed to Him. Thus, by
human intellect has ever grappled namely, to— the conflict with Gnosticism reverence in the
explain the origin of evil, and to make it con- church was deepened for the authority of
ceivable how the multiplicity of finite existence revelation as restraining the licence of human
can all have been derived from a single abso- speculation, and so the channel was marked
lute unconditioned principle. And besides, out within the bounds of which religious
these speculators only did what learned thought continued for centuries to flow.
theologians have constantly since endeavoured We
deal here with some general aspects of

to do namelv, combine the doctrines which the subject, referring to the articles on the
they learned from revelation with the results chief Gnostic teachers for details as to the
of what they regarded as the best philosophy special tenets of the different Gnostic sects.
of their own day, so as to obtain what seemed Use of the Word Gnosticism. In logical —
to them the most satisfactory account and order we ought to begin by defining Gnostic-
explanation of the facts of the universe. ism, and so fixing what extension is to be
Everv union of philosophy and religion is the given to the application of the term, a point
marriage of a mortal with an immortal on which writers are not agreed. Baur, for
the :

religion lives the philosophy grows old and


;
instance, reckons among Gnostics the sectaries
dies. When the philosophic element of a from whom the Clementine writings emanated,
theological system becomes antiquated, its although on some of the most fundamental
explanations which contented one age become points their doctrines are diametrically op-
unsatisfactory to the next, and there ensues posed to those commonly reckoned as Gnostic.
what is spoken of as a conflict between religion We
conform to more ordinary usage in giving
and science whereas, in reality, it is a conflict to the word a narrower sense, but this is a
;

between the science of one generation and that matter on which controversy would be only
of a succeeding one. If the religious specula- verbal, Gnosticism not being a word which has
tions of the 2nd cent, appear to us peculiarly in its own nature a definite meaning. There
unreasonable, it is because the philosophy is no difficulty in naming common character-
incorporated with them is completely alien istics of the sects commonly called Gnostic,
to modern thought. That philosophy gave though perhaps none of them is distinctive
unlimited licence to the framing of hvpotheses, enough to be made the basis of a logical
and provided that the results were in tolerable definition. They professed to be able to
accordance with the facts, no other proof was trace their doctrine to the apostles. Basilides
required that the causes which these hypo- was said to have learned from a companion of
theses assumed were really in operation. The St. Peter gospels were in circulation among
;

Timaeus of Plato is a favourable specimen them which purported to have been written
of the philosophic writings which moulded the by Philip, Thomas, and other apostles and ;

Gnostic speculations and the interval be- they professed to be able to find their doctrines
;

tween that and a modern treatise on physics in the canonical scriptures by methods of
is fully as wide as between Gnosticism and allegorical interpretation which, however
modern scientific theology. So it has hap- forced, could easily be paralleled in the pro-
pened that modern thought has less sympathy cedure of orthodox writers. If we made our
with heretical theories deeply coloured by the definition turn on the claim to the possession
philosophy of their own time than with the of such a Gnosis and to the title of Gnostic, we
plain common sense of a church writer such should have to count Clement of Alexandria
as Irenaeus, which led him to proceed by the among Gnostics and /. Timothy among Gnostic
positive historical method, and reject what writings ; for the church writers refused to
GNOSTICISM GNOSTICISM 395

surrender these titles to the heretics and, than the Gnostics, meaning by the latter word
claiming to be the true Gnostics, branded the the Ophite sects already mentioned. In the
heretical Gnosis as " falsely so called." If we work of Hippolytus against heresies, the name
fix our attention on the predominance of the is almost exclusively found in connexion with
speculative over the practical in Gnosticism, the sect of the Naassenes or Ophites, and three
which, as Baur truly remarks, led men to or four times it is repeated (v. 2, p. 93 ; 4,
regard Christianity less as a means of salvation p. 94 ; II, p. 123) that these people call them-
than as furnishing the principles of a philo- selves Gnostics, claiming that they alone
sophy of the universe, we must allow that since " knew the depths." The common source of
their time very many orthodox writings have Epiphanius and Philaster had an article on
been open to the same criticism. We come the Nicolaitanes, tracing the origin of the
very close to a definition if we make the Gnostics to Nicolas the Deacon (see also
criterion of Gnosticism to be the establishment Hippolytus, vii. 36, p. 258, and the statement
of a dualism between spirit and matter and,
;
of Irenaeus [II. ii. p. 188] that Nicolaitanism
springing out of this, the doctrine that the was a branch of Gnosis). Epiphanius divides
world was created bv some power different this article into two, making the Gnostics a
from the supreme God, yet we might not be separate heresy {Haer. 26). Hence ancient
able to establish that this characteristic be- usage leaves a good deal of latitude to modern
longs to every sect which we count as Gnostic ;
writers in deciding which of the 2nd-cent. sects
and if we are asked why we do not count such they will count as Gnostic.
sects as the Manicheans among the Gnostics, Classification of Gnostic Sects-—Some general
the best answer is that usage confines the word principles of philosophic classification may be
to those sects which arose in the ferment of easily agreed on, but when they come to be
thought when Christianity first came into applied, it is found that there are some sects
contact with heathen philosophy, excluding to which it is not obvious where to assign a
those which clearly began later. A title of place, and that some sects are separated whose
honour claimed by these sectaries for them- affinities are closer than those of others which
selves, and at first refused them by their are classed together. A very important,
opponents, was afterwards adopted as the though not a complete, division is that rnade
most convenient way of designating them. by Clement of Alexandria {Strom, iii. 5) into
We have no reason to think that the earliest the ascetic and licentious sects :both parties
Gnostics intended to found sects separated agreeing in holding the essential evil of matter;

from the church and called after their own the one endeavouring by rigorous abstinence
names. Their disciples were to be Christians, to free as much as possible man's soul from the
only elevated above the rest as acquainted bondage to which it is subjected by union with
with deeper mysteries, and called yvocariKoi, his material part, and refusing to marry and
because possessed of a Gnosis superior to the so enthral new souls in the prisons of bodies ;

simple faith of the multitude. Probably the the other abandoning as desperate any
earliest instance of the use of the word is by attempt to purify the hopelessly corrupt body,
Celsus, quoted by Origen, v. 6i, where, speak- and teaching that the instructed soul ought
ing of the multiplicity of Christian sects, he to hold itself unaffected by the deeds of the
says that there were some who professed to body. All actions were to it indifferent. The
be Gnostics. Irenaeus (i. xxv. 5, p. 104), division of Neander is intended to embrace a
speaking of the Carpocratians and in particular wider range than that just described. Taking
of that school of them which Marcellina the common doctrine of the Gnostic sects that
established at Rome, says that they called the world was made by a Being different from
themselves Gnostics. It is doubtless on the the supreme God, he distinguishes whether
strength of this passage that Eusebius {H. E. that Being was held to have acted in subor-
iv. 7), quoting Irenaeus in the same context, dination to the Supreme, and on the whole to
calls Carpocrates the father of the sect called have carried out his intentions, or to have been
that of the Gnostics. In the habitual use of absolutely hostile to the supreme God. Tak-
the word by Irenaeus himself it does not occur ing into account the generally acknowledged
as limited to Carpocratians. Irenaeus, in his principle that the Creator of the world was the
first book, when he has gone through the sects same as the God worshipped by the Jews, we
called after the names of heretical teachers, see that Gnostics of the second class would be
gives in a kind of appendix an account of a absolutely hostile to Judaism, which those of
number of sects in their general characteris- the former class might accept as one of the
tics Ophite, but he does not himself use that stages ordained by the Supreme in the enlight-
name. He calls them " multitudo Gnostic- enment of the world. Thus Neander's divi-
orum," tracing their origin to Simon Magus, sion classifies sects as not unfriendly to
and counting them as progenitors of the Judaism or as hostile to it ;the former class
Valentinians. And constantly we have the taking its origin in those Alexandrian schools
expression Basilidians, Valentinians, etc., " et where the authority of such teachers as Philo
reliqui Gnostici," where, by the latter appella- had weight, the latter among Christian con-
tion, the Ophite sects are specially intended. verts from Oriental philosophy whose early
The form of expression does not exclude from education had given them no prejudices in
the title of Gnostic the sects named after their favour of Judaism. Gieseler divides into
founders ; and the doctrine of the Valentin- Alexandrian Gnostics, whose teaching was
ians is all through the work of Irenaeus a mainlv influenced by the Platonic philosophy,
branch of " Gnosis falsely so called " ;
yet it and Syrian strongly affected by Parsism. In
is usually spoken of less as Gnosticism than the former the emanation doctrine was pre-
as a development of Gnosticism, and the dominant, in the latter dualism. Undoubted-
Valentinians are described as more Gnostic ly the most satisfactory classification would
396 GNOSTICISM GNOSTICISM
be if it were possible, as Matter suggested, to present shape, at least in some rudimentary
have one founded on the history of the genera- form, as fragments of it appear in different
tion of the sects, distinguishing the school Gnostic systems, especially the representation
where Gnosticism had its beginning, and of the work of Creation as performed by an
naming the schools which successively in inferior being, who still fully believed him-
different places altered in different directions self to be the Supreme, saying, " I am God,
the original scheme. But a good classification and there is none beside me," until, after this
of this kind is rendered impossible by the boast, his ignorance was enlightened. The
scantiness of our materials for the history of Jewish Cabbala has been asserted to be the
Gnosticism. Irenaeus is the first to give any parent of Gnosticism ;but the records of
full details, and he may be counted two Cabbalistic doctrine are quite modern, and
generations later than Valentinus ; for Mar- any attempt to pick out the really ancient
cus, the disciple of Valentinus, was resisted by parts must be attended with uncertainty.
one whom Irenaeus looked up to with respect Lipsius (p. 270, and Gratz, referred to by him)
as belonging to the generation above his own. shews that the Cabbala is certainly not older
The interval between Valentinus and the than Gnosticism, its relation to it being not
beginning of Gnosticism was, moreover, prob- that of a parent, but of a younger brother.
ably quite as great as that between Valen- If there be direct obligation, the Cabbala is the
tinus and Irenaeus. The phrase used by borrower, but many common features are to
Hippolytus in telling us that the Naassenes be explained by regarding both as branches
boasted that they alone " knew the depths " from the same root, and as alike springing from
was also a watchword of the false teachers the contact of Judaism with the religious
reprobated in the Apocalypse (Rev. ii. 24). beliefs of the farther East. Jewish Essenism
We can hardly avoid the inference that these especially furnished a soil favourable to the
Naassenes inherited a phrase continuously in growth of Gnosticism, with which it seems to
use among heretical teachers since before the have had in common the doctrine of the
publication of the Revelation. Of the writers essential evil of matter, as appears from the
who would deny the pastoral epistles to be denial by the Essenes of the resurrection of
St. Paul's, a large proportion date the Revela- the body and from their inculcation of a
tion only 2 or 3 years after St. Paul's death ;
disciplining of man's material part by very
therefore, whether or not it was St. Paul who severe asceticism. (See Lightfoot, Colossiatis,
wrote of the " falsely called knowledge," it 119 seq.) Further, the Ebionite sects which
remains probable that heretical pretenders to sprang out of Essenism, while they professed
Gnosis had arisen in his lifetime. If the the strongest attachment to the Mosaic law,
beginnings of Gnosticism were thus in apos- not only rejected the authority of the pro-
tolic times, we need not be surprised that the phetical writings, but dealt in a very arbitrary
notices of its origin given by Irenaeus more manner with those parts of the Pentateuch
than a century afterwards are so scanty and which conflicted with their peculiar doctrines.
;

that the teachers to whom its origin has been We have parallels to this in theories of some
ascribed, Simon, Menander, Nicolas, Cerin- of the early Gnostic sects which referred the
thus, remain shadowy or legendary characters. Jewish prophetical books to the inspiration of
It follows that conclusions as to the order of beings inferior to Him by Whom the law was
succession of the early Gnostic sects and their given, as well as in the arbitrary modes of
obligations one to another are very insecure. criticism applied by some of the later sects to
Still, some general facts in the history of the the books of Scripture. A form of Gnosticism
evolution of Gnosticism may be considered thus developed from Judaism when the latter
fairly certain; and we are disposed to accept was brought into contact with the mystic
the classification of Lipsius and count three speculations of the East, whether we suppose
stages in the progress of Gnosticism, even Essenism to have been a stage in the process
though there may be doubt to what place a of growth or both to have been independent
particular sect is to be assigned. The birth- growths under similar circumstances of
place of Gnosticism may be said to be Syria, development. Lipsius notes as the char-
if we include in that Palestine and Samaria, acteristics of those sects which he counts as
where church tradition places the activity of belonging to the first stage of Gnosticism that
those whom it regards as its founders, Simon they still move almost or altogether within the
and Menander. It may also be inferred from circle of the Jewish religious history, and that
the use made of O.T. and of Hebrew words the chief problem they set themselves is the
that Gnosticism sprang out of Judaism. The defining the relation between Christianity and
false teaching combated in Colossians, which Judaism. The solutions at which they arrive
has several Gnostic features, is also distinctly are very various. Those Jewish sects whose
Jewish, insisting on the observance of sabbaths Essenism passed into the Ebionitism of the
and new moons. The Epp. to Timothy and Clementines regarded Christianity as essen-
Titus, dealing with a somewhat later develop- tially identical with Judaism, either religion
ment of Gnosticism, describe the false teachers being sufficient for salvation. These sects are
as " of the circumcision," " professing to be quite orthodox as to the Creation, their utmost
teachers of the law " and propounders of deviation (if it can be called so) from the
" Jewish fables." It is not unlikely that what received belief being the ascription of Creation
these epistles characterize as " profane and to the immanent wisdom of God. Other
old wives' fables " may be some of the Jewish Jewish speculators came to think of the form-
Haggadah of which the early stages of Gnos- ation of matter as accomplished by a sub-
ticism are full. The story of laldabaoth, e.^., ordinate being, carrying out, it may be, the
told by Irenaeus (i. 30), we hold to date from will of the Supreme, but owing to his finiteness
the very beginning of Gnosticism, if not in its and ignorance doing the work with many
GNOSTICISM GNOSTICISM 397

imperfections. Then came the theory that system of Valentinus, the Pythagorean Pla-
this subordinate being was the God of the tonic philosophy predominates, the Stoic in
Jews, to which nation he had issued many that of the Basilidians as presented by Hip-
commandments that were not good, though polytus. In these systems, tinged with
overruled by the Supreme so as to carry out Hellenism, the Jewish religion is not so much
His ends. Lastly came the theory of the controverted or disparaged as ignored. The
Cainites and other extreme Ophite sects, which mythological personages among whom in the
represented the God of the Jews as the deter- older Gnosis the work of creation was distri-
mined enemy of the Supreme, and as one buted are in these Hellenic systems replaced
whose commands it was the duty of every by a kind of abstract beings (of whom the
enlightened Gnostic to disobey. With all their Valentinian aeons are an example) which
variety of results, these sects agreed in the personify the different stages of the process
importance attached to the problem of the by which the One Infinite Spirit communicates
true relations of Judaism to Christianity. and reveals itself to derived existences. The
They do make use of certain heathen prin- distinction between faith and knowledge
ciples of cosmogony, but these such as already becomes sharpened, the persons to whom
had become familiar to Syriac Judaism, and faith and knowledge respectively are to serve
introduced not so much to effect a reconcilia- as guides being represented as essentially
tion between Christianity and heathenism as different in nature. The most obvious divi-
to give an explanation of the service rendered sion of men is into a kingdom of light and a
to the world by the publication of Christianity, kingdom of darkness. The need of a third
the absolute religion. This is made mainly class may have first made itself felt from the
to consist in the aid given to the soul in its necessity of finding a place for members of the
struggles to escape the bonds of finiteness and Jewish religion, who stood so far above
darkness, by making known to it the super- heathenism, so far below Christianity. The
sensual world and awaking it to the conscious- Platonic trichotomy of body, soul, and spirit
ness of its spiritual origin. Regarding this afforded a principle of threefold classification,
knowledge as the common privilege of Chris- and men are divided into earthly (uXikoL or
tians, the first speculators would count their XoIkoi), animal (\l/vxi-Koi), and spiritual (-nvev-
own possession of it as differing rather in fxciTiKoi). In these Hellenic Gnostic systems
degree than in kind ; and so it is not easy to the second class represents not Jews but
draw a sharp line of distinction between their ordinary Christians, and the distinction be-
doctrine on the subject of Gnosis and that tween them and the Gnostics themselves (who
admitted as orthodox. Our Lord had de- are the spiritual) rests on an assumed differ-
scribed it as the privilege of His disciples to ence of nature which leaves little room for
know the mysteries of the kingdom of heaven ; human free will. Salvation by faith and
later when His followers learned of a suffering corresponding works is disparaged as suitable
Messiah, and of the fulfilment in Jesus of the only for the psychical, the better sort of whom
types of the Mosaic law, they felt that the veil may, by this means, be brought to as high a
had been removed for them, and that they position in the order of the universe as their
enjoyed a knowledge of the meaning of the nature is capable of ; but the really spiritual
O.T. Scriptures to which their imconverted need not these lower methods of salvation. It
brethren were strangers. This feeling per- suffices for them to have the knowledge of
vades the Ep. to the Hebrews, and still more their true nature revealed for them to become
that of Barnabas. Another doctrine which certain of shaking off all imprisoning bonds
St. Paul describes as a mystery formerly kept and soaring to the highest region of all. Thus
secret, but now revealed through his gospel, is ordinary historical Christianity runs the risk
the admission of the Gentiles on equal terms of meeting the same fate in the later Gnostic
with the Jews to the inheritance of the king- systems that befell Judaism in the earlier. The
dom of Christ. It was no part of orthodox doctrines and facts of the religion are only
Christian doctrine that all Christians possessed valued so far as they can be made subservient
the true Gnosis in equal degree. Some re- to the peculiar notions of Gnosticism ; and
quired to be fed with milk, not with strong the method of allegorical interpretation was
meat, and had not their senses exercised by so freely applied to both Testaments that all
reason of use to discern between good and the solid parts of the religion were in danger
evil. Clement of Alexandria distinguished of being volatilized away.
between faith and knowledge. The difference, The natural consequence of this weakening
therefore, between the Gnostic doctrine and of the historic side of Christianity was the
that of the church mainly depends on the removal of all sufficient barrier against the
character of what was accounted knowledge, intrusion of heathen elements into the sys-
much of the Gnostic so-called knowledge tems ; while their moral teaching was in-
consisting in acquaintance with the names of juriously affected by the doctrine that the
a host of invisible beings and with the for- spiritual were secure of salvation by necessity
mulae which could gain their favour. of their nature and irrespectively of their
Gnosticism, in its first stage, did not conduct. Gnosticism, in its third stage,
proceed far outside the limits of Syria. What struggles in various ways to avoid these faults,
Lipsius counts as the second stage dates from and so again draws nearer to the teaching
the migration of Gnostic systems to Alex- of the Catholic church. Thus the Docetae
andria, where the myths of Syriac Gnosis came of Hippolytus allow of immense variety of
to be united to principles of Grecian philo- classes, corresponding to the diversity of
sophy. Different Gnostic systems resulted ideas derived from the world of aeons, which
according as the principles of this or that each has received ; while again they deny to
Grecian school were adopted. Thus, in the none a share in our Lord's redemption, but
398 GNOSTICISM GORDIANUS
owa that members of different sects are en- human affairs, but almost
as a turning-point in
titled, each in his degree, to claim kinship with all reduce the Redeemer's work to the impar-
Jesus and to obtain forgiveness of sins through tation of knowledge and the disclosure of
Him. So again in one of the latest of the mysteries. With regard to the nature of
Gnostic systems, that of Pistis Sophia, there Christ, the lowest view is held by Justinus,
is no assertion of an essential diversity of who describes Jesus but as a shepherd boy
nature among men, but the immense develop- commissioned by an angel to be the bearer of
ment of ranks and degrees in the spiritual and who attributes to Him
a divine revelation,
world, which that work professes to reveal, is at no time any higher character. Carpo-
used so as to provide for every man a place crates makes Jesus a man like others, only of
according to his works. In the system of more than ordinary steadfastness and purity
Marcion, too, the theory of essentially different of soul, possessing no prerogatives which other
classes is abandoned ;the great boast of men may not attain in the same or even higher
Christianity is its universality and the
; degree if they follow, or surpass. His example.
redemption of the Gospel is represented, not Besides furnishing an example. He was also
as the mere rousing of the pneumatic soul to supposed to have made a revelation of truth,
consciousness of privileges all along possessed, to secret traditions of which the followers of
but as the introduction of a real principle of Carpocrates appealed. At the opposite pole
moral life through the revelation of a God of from those who see in the Saviour a mere man
love forgiving sins through Christ. are those who deny His humanity altogether.
We add brief notes on a few main points We know from St. John's epistle that the
of the Gnostic systems. doctrine that our Lord had not really come in

Creation and Cosmogony. ^Philo (de Op. the flesh was one which at an early time^
Mund.) had inferred from the expression, " Let troubled the church.
MS make man," of Genesis that God had used Authorities.— The great work of Irenaeus
other beings as assistants in the creation of against heresies is the chief storehouse whence
man, and he explains in this way why man is writers, both ancient and modern, have drawn
capable of vice as well as virtue, ascribing the their accounts of the Gnostic sects. It was
origin of the latter to God, of the former to primarily directed against the then most
His helpers in the work of creation. The popular form of the heresy of Valentinus, and
earliest Gnostic sects ascribe the work of hence this form of Gnosticism has thrown all
creation to angels, some of them using the others intothe shade, andmanymodern writers
same passage in Genesis (Justin. Dial, cum when professing to describe Gnosticism really
Try ph. c. 67). describe Valentinianism. Irenaeus was largely
Doctrine with respect to Judaism. —
The doc- copied by Tertullian, who, however, was an
trine that the Creator of the world is not the independent authority on Marcionism by ;

supreme God leads at once to the question. Hippolytus, who in his work against heresies
What then is to be thought of the God of the adds, however, large extracts from his in-
Jews, who certainly claimed to have created dependent reading of Gnostic works and by ;

the world ? This question is most distinctly Epiphanius, who also gives a few valuable
answered in the doctrine of the Ophite system additions from other sources. The Stromateis
(Iren. i. 30). According to it he who claimed of Clement of Alexandria, though provokingly
to be a jealous God, acknowledging none other, desultory and unsystematic, furnish much
was led by sheer ignorance to make a false valuable information about Gnosticism, which
pretension. He was in truth none other than was still a living foe of the church. The
the chief of the creative angels, holding but a writings of Origen also yield much important
subordinate place in the constitution of the information. The matter, not borrowed from
universe. It was he who forbad to Adam and Irenaeus, to be gleaned from later heresiolo-
Eve tliat knowledge by which they might be gists is scanty and of doubtful value.
informed that he had superiors, and who on Modern works which have made valuable
their disobedience cast them out of Paradise. contributions to the knowledge of Gnosticism
Doctrine concerning the Nature of Man. — include Neander, Genetische Entwickelung
With the myth, told by Saturninus, of the (1818), and Church Hist. vol. ii. (1825 and 2nd
animation of a previously lifeless man by a ed. 1843, trans, in Clarke's series); Burton,
spark of light from above, he connected the Bampton Lectures (1829) Baur, Christliche
;

doctrine, in which he was followed by almost Gnosis (1835) Die christliche Kirche der drei
;

all Gnostic sects, that there would be no ersten J ahrhunderte (1853, 2nd ed. i860) and ;

resurrection of the body, the spark of light Mansel, The Gnostic Heresies {iSy^). [g.s.]
being taken back on death to the place whence Gordianus (7), father of pope Gregory the
it had come, and man's material part being Great, was a noble Roman of senatorial rank,
resolved into its elements. Saturninus is said and descended from a pope Felix (Joann.
to have taught the doctrine, antagonistic to Diac. in Vit. S. Gregorii Greg. Dialog. 1. 4,
;

that of man's free will, that there were classes c. 16). John the Deacon says that Felix IV.
of men bynature essentially different, and of {ace. 523) was his ancestor but this pope
;


these he counted two the good and the being described as a Samnite, whereas Gregory
wicked. The doctrine became common to is always spoken of as of Roman descent,
many Gnostic systems that the human frame Felix III. (ace. 467) is more probable. A
contained a heavenly element struggling to large property accrued to Gregory on his
return to its native place. father's death. Gordianus is described as a

Redemption and Christology. The Gnostic religious man, and thus contributing to the
systems generally represent man's spirit as eminently religious training of his son, though
imprisoned in matter, and needing release. not canonized after death, as were his wife
The majority recognize the coming of Christ Silvia, and his two sisters, Tarsilla and
GRATIANUS GRATIANUS 399
Aemiliana. John the deacon {op. cit. 1. 4, later years, especially the hated Maximinus.
c. 83) describes two pictures of him and his Another act, doubtless at the beginning of
wife Silvia remaining to t!ie writer's time (9th his reign, shewed his determination to break
cent.) in the Atrium of St. Andrew's monas- with paganism more effectually than his pre-
tery, where they had been placed by St. decessors had done. This was his refusal of
Gregory himself, the founder of the monastery. the robe of pontifex maximus, when it was
Gordianus is represented as standing before a brought to him according to custom by the
seated figure of St. Peter (who holds his right pontifices thinking (as the heathen historian
;

hand) and as clothed in a chestnut-coloured tells us) that it was unlawful for a Christian
planeta over a dalmatic, and with caligae on (Zos. iv. 36). The title appears indeed to some
his feet. Gordianus is designated " Region- extent on coins and inscriptions, but it is not
arius," from which, as well as from his dress, easy to fix their date.
Baronius supposes that he was one of the The Eastern empire was, meanwhile, in
seven cardinal deacons of Rome, it having the hands of the incompetent Valens, in great
been not uncommon, he says, for married men, danger from Goths. In 378 the Alamanni
with the consent of their wives, to embrace Lentienses passed the Rhine in great force and
clerical or monastic life. As to the dress, he threatened the Western empire, but were
adduces two of St. Gregory's epistles {Ep. 113, heavily defeated by Gratian at Argentaria,
1. i. ind. 2, and Ep. 28, 1. 7, ind. i) to shew that near Colmar (Amm. xxxi. 10). This set him
the dalmatic and caligae were then part of the free to move towards the East and at ;

costume of Roman deacons. But the meaning Sirmium he heard of the defeat of his uncle
of the title " regionarius " is uncertain. It at Adrianople, Aug. 7, and of his ignoble death
occurs in St. Gregory's Ep. 5, 1. 7, ind. i, in {ib. 11,6; 12,10). The situation was extremely
Ep. 2 of pope Honorius I. (regionarius nostrae critical for an emperor not 20 years of age. The
sedis) ; in Aimoinus, de Gestis Francorum, pt. barbarians were in motion on all the frontiers.
2, p. 247 (regionarius primae sedis) ; in Vit. The internal condition of the West was in-
Ludovici Pii, ann. 835 (regionarius Romanae secure, from the tacit antagonism between the
urbis) ; and in Anastasius, On Constantine two courts, and the East was now suddenly
(Theophanes regionarius). In two of these thrown upon his hands, as Valens had left no
instances, those from Honorius and Aimoinus, children. Gratian shewed his judgment by
the persons so designated are expressly said to sending for the younger Theodosius, son of the
be subdeacons. It seems to have denoted an late count Theodosius and about 13 years
office connected with the city of Rome and older than himself, who after his father's
the apostolic see, but certainly not one con- execution was living in retirement upon his
fined to deacons. As to the dress, it is merely estates in Spain (Victor, Ep. 72, 74, etc. ;

originally ordinary lay costume, the planeta, cf. Themist. Orat. 14, p. 183 a). Theodosius,
rather than the casula, having Iseen worn by loyal and fearless like his father, was at once
persons of rank. St. Gregory himself, in his entrusted with command of the troops as
portrait in the same monastery described by magister militum. His successes over the
John the deacon, wears precisely the same barbarians (probably Sarmatians) encouraged
dress, even to the colour of the planeta, only Gratian to appoint him emperor of the East
having the pallium over it, to mark his with general applause (Theod. v. 5, 6).
ecclesiastical rank. [j.b —v.] Gratian returned from Sirmium by way of
Gratianus (5) {Flavins Gratianus Augustus), Aquileia and Milan, at which places he passed
emperor 375-383, son of Valentinian, was some parts of July and Aug. 379. He had
born at Sirmium in 359, while his father previously been brought into contact with
was still an officer in the army. When St. Ambrose, and had received from him the
Valentinian was chosen emperor by the two first books of his treatise de Fide, intended
soldiers in 364, Gratian was not five years old. specially to preserve him against Arianism.
On Aug. 24, 367, Valentinian, at Amiens, This teaching had its due eftect and he now
;

declared him " Augustus." addressed a letter to the bp. of Milan (see
When Valentinian died in 375, the infant infra). St. Ambrose sent him two more
child of his second wife Justina (Valentinian books of his and probably had per-
treatise,
II.) was proclaimed Augustus by his principal sonal intercourse with him. Gratian then
officers (Amm. xxx. 10), in reliance upon the went on to his usual residence at Treves, but
youth and good nature of Gratian, who was at during the following years resided much more
Treves, and who recognized his young brother frequently at and near Milan, especially in
almost immediately. Justina fixed her court winter; his intercourse with St. Ambrose
at Sirmium ; and the Western empire was resulting in his confirmation in the Catholic
perhaps nominally divided between the two faith. There was, however, another side to
brothers, Gratian having Gaul, Spain, and this practical neglect of the Gallic provinces.
Britain, and Valentinian, Italy, lUyricum, and —
The Western provincials never very con-
Africa (Zos. iv. 19). But this division must
have been simply nominal, as Gratian con-

tented felt the absence of the imperial court.
If Gratian had continued to reside at Treves,
stantly acted in the latter provinces (see the rebellion of Magnus Maximus might never
Tillem. Emp. v. p. 140, and cf. the laws quoted have taken place, and certainly would not
infra). For the first years of his reign, till have grown so formidable.
the death of his uncle Valens, Gratian resided The influence of St. Ambrose is shewn by
chiefly at Treves, whence most of his laws the ecclesiastical laws (see infra), and in
are dated. His first acts were to punish with the removal of the altar of Victory from the
death some of the prominent instruments of the senate-house at Rome in a.d. 381 (St. Ambr.
cruelties committed in the name of justice and Ep. 17, 5 ; Symm. Ep. 61, ad init. et ad
discipline, which had disgraced his father's |
finem). The heathen senators, though in the
;

400 GRATIANUS GRATIANUS


minority, were accustomed to offer incense on the first time dominant throughout the
this altar, and to toucli it in taking solemn empire. His measures in behalf of the church
oaths (Ambr. £/>. 17,9). It had been removed were often tainted with injustice towards the
or covered up during the visit of Constantius, sects. But it is probable that the laws were
but was again restored under Julian, and very imperfectly carried out (see Richter, p.
Valentinian's policy had been against inter- 327). His first general law against heretical
ference with such matters (Symm. I.e.). Its sects is dated from Treves, May i, 376, and
removal now caused great distress to the speaks of a previous law of the same kind {Cod.
heathen party, who met in the senate-house Theod. xvi. 5, 4), which may, however, be one
and petitioned Gratian for its restoration. of Valens (and Valentinian).
But the Christians, who had absented them- In 377, shortly before the death of Valens,
selves from the curia, met privately, and sent he condemned rebaptism, and ordered the
a counter-petition through pope Damasus to Donatist churches to be restored to the
Ambrose, who presented it to the emperor Catholics and their private meeting-houses
(Ambr. I.e.). The weight of this document confiscated {Cod. Theod. xvi. 6, 2). The
enabled the advisers of Gratian to prevent his death of Valens was naturally the signal for
giving the heathen party a hearing. This blow the disciple of St. Ambrose to restore the
was soon followed by another even more telling Catholics of the East to their possessions. He
— the confiscation of the revenues of the temple recalled all those whom his uncle had ban-
of Victory, and the abolition of the privileges ished, and further issued an edict of toleration
of the pontiffs and vestals, a measure ex- for all Christian sects, except the Eunoinians
tended to other heathen institutions {ib. 3-5 (extreme Arians, see Soz. vi. 26), Photinians,
18, II f.
; Cod. Theod. xv. 10, 20). and Manicheans (Socr. v. 2 ; Soz. vii. i).
These laws were followed by a famine in Theodoret (v. 2) appears to confuse this with
Italy, especially in Rome, which the pagans the later edict of Gratian and Theodosius.
naturally ascribed to sacrilege (Symm. I.e.). On the strong representations of Idacius of
A much more serious danger was the revolt Merida, the Priscillianists, an enthusiastic sect
of Magnus Maximus, a former comrade of of Gnostics numerous in Spain (Sulpicius
Theodosius in Britain, who was probably Severus, Chron. ii. 47, 6), were also excepted.
jealous of his honours, and was now put for- On his return from Sirmium, Gratian wrote
ward as emperor by thesoldiers. [Maximus (2).] the following affectionate and interesting auto-
This rising took place a.d. 383 in Britain, graph (Ambr. Ep. i, 3) letter to St. Ambrose :
whence the usurper passed over to the mouth " I desire much to enjoy the bodily presence
of the Rhine, gathering large bodies of men as of him whose recollection I carry with me, and
he went. Gratian set out to meet him, with with whom I am present in spirit. Therefore,
his two generals Balio and Merobaudes, the hasten to me, religious priest of God, to teach
latter a Frank by birth. The two armies me the doctrine of the true faith. Not that
met near Paris, and Gratian was deserted by I am anxious for argument, or wish to know
nearly all his troops (Zos. iv. 35 ; Ambr. in God in words rather than in spirit but that ;

Ps. 61, 17). Only 300 horse remained faithful. my


heart may be opened more fully to receive
With these he fled at full speed to Lyons. The the abiding revelation of the divinity. For
governor received him with protestations of He will teach me. Whom
I do not deny, Whom
loyalty, and took a solemn oath on the Gospels I confess to be my
God and Lord, not my
not to hurt him. Gratian, deceived by his raising as an objection against His divinity
assurances, took his place in his imperial robes that He took upon Himself a created nature
at a feast, during or soon after which he was like own [non ei obiciens, quam in me
my
basely assassinated (Aug. 25) at the age of 24, video, creaturam]. I confess that I can add
leaving no children. Tlie traitor even denied nothing to the glory of Christ but I should
;

his body burial (Ambr. I.e., and 23 f. Marcell. wish to commend myself to the Father in
;

sub anno). glorifying the Son. I will not fear a grudging



Gratian was amiable and modest in fact, spirit on the part of God. I shall not suppose
too modest to be a good governor in these myself such an encomiast as to increase His
rough times. He was generous and kind- divinity by my
praises. In my
weakness and
hearted, of an attractive disposition and frailty I utter what I can, not what is adequate
beautiful person. His tutor Ausonius had to His divinity. I desire you to send me a
;

taken pains to inspire him with tastes for copy of the same treatise, which you sent
rhetoric and versification. He was chaste and before [de Fide, i. ii.], enlarging it by a faithful
!

temperate, careful in religious conduct, and dissertation on the Holy Spirit


'
prove that :

zealous for the faith. His great fault was a He is God by arguments of Scripture and
'

neglect of public business through devotion reason. May the Deity keep you for many
to sport, especially to shooting wild beasts years, '
my
father, and worshipper of the
with bow and arrows in his parks and preserves eternal God, Jesus Christ, Whom
we worship."
(Amm. I.e. ; Victor, Ep. 73). He once killed St. Ambrose replies, excusing his non-attend-
a lion with a single arrow (Aus. Epig. 6) ; and ance upon the emperor, praising the expres-
St. Ambrose alludes to his prowess in the sions of his faith, and sending two fresh books
For the new book, de Spiritu

I

chase, adopting the language of David's elegy of his treatise.


I

over Jonathan " Gratiani sagitta non est Saneto, he asks time, knowing (as he says)
reversa retro " {de Obttu Valent. 73 ;cf. the what a critic will read them. The subject was
old Latin of II. Sam. i. 22). at this moment being largely discussed in the
1

The ecclesiastical policy of Gratian was Eastern church.


1

more important than his civil or military It is assumed by De Broglie that the bishop
i

government. His reign, coinciding with that and the emperor did not meet at this time, but
I

of Theodosius, saw orthodox Christianity for St. Ambrose writes in the letter just quoted,
GRATIANUS GREGORIUS 401
" veniam plane et festinabo ut jubes," and
§ 7, (Ambr. Ep. 9). The records of this council
two laws of Gratian's are dated from Milan in are preserved by St. Ambrose, (following his
July and Aug. 379 (Cod. Just. vi. 32, 4, July 8th epistle in the Benedictine ed.), who took
29, and Cod. Theod. xvi. 5, 5, Aug. 3, to the chief part in it, though he did not
Hesperius Pf. Praet. de haereticis), the technically preside. The same council took up
second of which may shew the influence of the case of pope Damasus and besought the
St. Ambrose. It forbids the heresies against emperor to interfere against the partisans of
which former imperial edicts had been di- the antipope Ursinus (ib. 11). The relations
rected, and especially that of rebaptism (the of Gratian with the see of Rome are somewhat
Donatists), and revokes the recent tolerant obscure, but some extension of its privileges
edict of Sirmium. and pretensions dates from this reign. Ac-
About this time must be dated the occur- cording to the documents first published by
rences mentioned by St. Ambrose in de Spiritu Sirmond, a synod held in Rome soon after
Sancto, i. §§ 19-21. The empress Justina, an Gratian's accession made large demands for
Arian, had obtained from Gratian a basilica ecclesiastical jurisdiction and particularly
for the worship of her sect, to the great dis- asked that the bp. of Rome should only
tress of the Catholics. He restored it, how- be judged by a council of bishops or by the
ever, apparently of his own motion, to their emperor in person. Gratian in his rescript
equal surprise and delight, perhaps a.d. 380 to Aquilinus the vicar (of Rome ?) grants and
(cf. Richter, n. 30, p. 692 ; de Spiritu Sancto, confirms several privileges, but says nothing
§ 20, neque enim aliud possumus dicere, nisi of the latter request. Some doubt hangs over
sancti Spiritus hanc priore gratiam, quod the whole of these documents. (See Godefroy,
ignorantibus omnibus subito Basilicam red- Cod. Theod. vol. vi. appendix, pp. 17, 18 ;

didisti). St. Ambrose also obtained another Baron. Annals, sub anno 381, §§ i, 2 Tillem.
;

victory over the Arians in 380 in his journey Damase, arts. 10 and 11. Greenwood, Cathe-
to Sirmium, where Justina apparently also dra Petti, vol. i. pp. 239-242; Hefele, Councils,
went. In spite of her vehement opposition, § 91, does not even hint at their existence.)
he succeeded in consecrating an orthodox In consequence of the success of the council
bishop to the metropolitan see of lUyria, and of Aquileia St. Ambrose was anxious to call
thus laid the foundation for the suppression together an oecumenical assembly at Rome to
of heresy in that quarter of the empire (Paul- settle the dispute between Nectarius and
inus, Vita Ambrosii, 11). Maximus, who both claimed the see of Con-
Gratian evidently agreed in the important stantinople, and pressed the emperor Theo-
edict issued by his colleague Theodosius on dosius on the point (Epp. 13 and 14), who,
Feb. 27, 380, from Thessalonica to the people however, naturally viewed this interference
of Constantinople. This remarkable docu- with coldness (Theod. v. 8, 9). A council,
ment declared the desire of the emperors that nevertheless, met at Rome, but without doing
all their subjects should profess the religion much beyond condemning the Apollinarians.
given by St. Peter to the Romans and now Returning to Milan, St. Ambrose took leave
held by the pontiff Damasus, and Peter, bp. of the young emperor for the last time. Their
of Alexandria —that is to say, should confess intercourse had always been tender and
the one deity and equal majesty of the three affectionate, and was the last thought of the
persons of the Blessed Trinity, Father, Son, emperor before his death.
and Holy Spirit and further, that they alone
; We may here mention an instance of their
who hold this faith are to be called Catholics, relations, which may have been at this or at
and their places of meeting churches while the
; any other period of their friendship (de
rest are branded as heretics, and are threat- Broglie, to make a point, puts it here, vol. vi.
ened with an indefinite punishment [Cod. p. 45, but neither Paulinus, § 37, nor Sozomen,
Theod. xvi. i, 2 cf. the law of the next year,
; vii. 25, gives any hint of date). A heathen of
which mentions various Catholic bishops of quality was condemned to death for abusing
the East, whose communion was to be the test Gratian and calling him an unworthy son of
of orthodoxy, including Nectarius of Con- Valentinian. As he was being led to execu-

stantinople perhaps the reference to Dam-
asus had given offence). De Broglie says of
tion, Ambrose hurried to the palace to inter-
cede for him. One Macedonius, master of the
these laws, " It was impossible to abjure more offices, it would seem, ordered the servants to
decidedly the pretension of dogmatizing from refuse him admittance, as Gratian was engaged
the elevation of the throne, which had been in his favourite sport. Ambrose went round
since Constantine the mania of all the em- to the park gates, entered unperceived by the
perors and the scourge of the empire " (vol. v. huntsmen, and never left Gratian till he had
p. 365). But correct dogmatism is still overcome his arguments and those of his
dogmatism, and the definition of truth by courtiers and obtained remission of the sen-
good emperors kept up the delusion that the tence. " The time will come," he said to
right of perpetual interference with religion Macedonius, " when you will fly for asylum to
was inherent in their office. the church, but the church doors will be shut
In May 383, at Padua, Gratian issued a penal against you." The anecdote of the criminal is
law against apostates, and those who try to told by Sozomen, I.e. the words to Mace-
;

make others apostatize from Christianity. donius are given by Paulinus, u.s. [j-w.]
In 381 he summoned the council of Aquileia Gregorius (3), surnamed Thaumaturgus,
(which met on Sept. 5) to decide the cases bp. of Neocaesarea in Pontus, c. 233-270 ;

of the Illyrian bishops Palladius and Secun- born c. 210 at Neocaesarea on the Lycus, the
dianus, who were accused of Arianism. Their modern Niksar the son of wealthy and noble
;

condemnation put an end to the official heathen parents. Christianity had as yet
life of Arianism in that important district made little progress in that neighbourhood,
26
402 GREGORIUS GREGORIUS
there being only 17 Christians in the whole questions, pruned his native wildness and
region (Greg. Nys. Vita Thautn. Migne, Patr. repressed his exuberance. He was taught to

Gk. xlvi. 954). The extraordinary success of interrogate his consciousness, and critically
the episcopal labours of the young missionary to investigate reasonings and the meanings of
and the romantic details with which later words. Origen accustomed his pupils first to
hands embellished them secured for him the the dialectic method of inquiry, and then, in
well-known title of Thaumatttrgus. This re- Aristotelian fashion, fed them to contemplate
pute cannot be set down as exclusively due to the " magnitude, the wondrousness, the mag-
the credulousness of the age, for as Lardner nificent, and absolutely wise construction of
(Cred. ii. 42, § 5) remarked, besides Gregory of the world." He seems to have followed
Nyssa, such writers as Basil, Jerome, and (strangely enough) the order of the sciences
Theodoret distinguished him, as above others, in Comte's classification of the branches of
" a man of apostolic signs and wonders " (cf. human knowledge. Thus, he began with
Dr. J. H. Newman, Essays on Miracles, p. " the immutable foundation of all, geometry,
263). No light is thrown upon his thauma- and then " (says Gregory) " by astronomy he
turgic renown by his extant writings, which lifted us up to the things highest above us."
are conspicuous for their philosophic tone, He reduced things to their " pristine ele-
humility, self-distrust, and practical sense. ments," " going over the nature of the whole
He must have been a man of singular force of and of each several section," " he filled our
character and weighty judgment. Heretics minds with a rational, instead of an irrational,
claimed the sanction of his name for their wonder at the sacred oeconomy of the universe
speculations, thus indirectly revealing the and the irreprovable constitution of all
confidence in which he was held by all parties. things." These words and much more that
Gregory (originally Theodorus) stated that might be quoted from the Paneg>Tic are a,
his father died and he himself passed through strange comment on the thaumaturgic actions
a remarkable spiritual crisis in his 14th year. freely attributed to Gregory. Morals followed
He attributed the change of sentiment to " the physics, and emphasis is laid by Gregory on
Divine Logos, the Angel of the counsel of God, the practical experience by which Origen
and the common Saviour of all." He left it, desired his pupils to verify all theories, " stim-
however, doubtful in what precisely the change ulating us by the deeds he did more than by
consisted. His mother having suggested the the doctrines he taught." He urged the study
pursuit of rhetoric, he was advised to study of Grecian philosophy for the direct culture of
specially Roman law and become an alumnus their moral nature. The end of the entire
of the celebrated school of jurisprudence at discipline was " nothing but this : By the
Berytus in Syria. His sister needed an escort pure mind make thyself like to God, that thou
to Palestine to join her husband in his high mayest draw near to Him and abide in Him."
position under the Roman governor at Origen advised Gregory to study all the
Caesarea. The young Gregory and his brother writings of the philosophers and poets of old,
Athenodorus took this opportunity to travel. except the Atheists, and gave reasons for a
"My guardian angel" (says he) "on our catholic and liberal eclecticism, and, with a
arrival at Caesarea handed us over to the care modern spirit, disclaimed the force of pre-
and tuition of Origen," and the brothers, judice and the misery of half-truths and of
abandoning their journey, remained there fixed ideas, and the advantage of " selecting
under the personal spell of the teacher for five all that was useful and true in all the various
years. The mental processes by which Gregory philosophers, and putting aside all that was
was led to Christ throw considerable light on false." Gregory says of his master " That :

the mind of Origen and the methods of Chris- leader of all (dpxvy^^ Trdyrwr) who speaks in
tian education in the 3rd cent. These details undertones {virrjxdip) to God's dear prophets
are preserved in a panegyric on Origen, which and suggests to them all their prophecy and
before leaving Caesarea the young student their mystic and divine word, has so honoured
pronounced to a great assembly in the presence this man Origen as a friend as to appoint him
of his master. They differ in several particu- to be their interpreter." Evidently to Gre-
lars from the account of Gregory of Nyssa gory the gift of interpretation was as much a
(Greg. Nys. Vita Thaum. ; Migne, Pair. Gk. divine charisma as prophecy itself. So great
vol. xlvi. pp. 893-958). According to Gre- were the joys thus placed within his reach that
gory's own statements {Orat. de Orig. c. vi.), he adds with rapture, " He was truly a
Origen enticed his pupils first to the study of paradise to us, after the similitude of the
philosophy, which he recommended as a duty Paradise of God." He regrets his departure
to the Lord of all, " since man alone of all from Caesarea, as Adam might bewail his
creatures is deemed by his Creator as worthy expulsion from Eden, having to eat of the soil,
to pursue it." " A thoughtful man, if pious, to contend with thorns and thistles, and dwell
must philosophize," says he, so " at length, in darkness, weeping and mourning. He says,
like some spark lighting on our soul, love was " I go away of my own will, and not by con-
kindled and burst into flame within us, a love straint, and by my own act I am dispossessed,
to the Holy Logos, the most lovely object of when it is in my option to remain."
all, Who attracts all to Himself by His unutter- The influence of Origen's teaching upon
able beauty." " Only one object seemed Gregory and Athenodorus is confirmed by
worthy of pursuit, philosophy and the master Eusebius (//. E. vi. 30), who adds that " they
of philosophy, this divine (^etoj) man." His made such improvement that both, though
love to Origen was like that of Jonathan for very young, were honoured with the episco-
David. Gregory praises Origen for his pate in the churches of Pontus."
Socratic discipline, and for the way in which Gregory of Nyssa describes Gregory of Neo-
his teacher probed his inmost soul with caesarea as spending much time in Alexandria,
; '

GREGORIUS GREGORIUS 403

and says that before his baptism, while resi- legislator. Like Moses, he took counsel of
dent there, he displayed a high tone of moral God, and retired into the wilderness, but,
propriety. A residence in Alexandria may unlike Moses, he married no wife, and had
have occurred in the five years that Gregory virtue only for his spouse. Then we are told
and his brother were under the direction of that Phaedimus, bp. of Amasea, sought to
Origen. These years were probably inter- consecrate him by guile, but failed, and
rupted by the persecution under Maximinus adopted the expedient of electing and ordain-
Thrax (reigned July 235 to May 238), which ing him by prayer when he was distant a
was aimed especially at the leaders of the journey of three days. We are assured that
church. Origen may then have gone into this induced Gregory to yield to the summons,
retirement and left his pupils at liberty to and to submit afterwards to the custom.ary
travel into Egypt. If Gregory's baptism was rites. Gregory only demanded time for
deferred until Origen could return to Caesarea, meditation on the truths of the Christian faith
it must have taken place at the close of their before accepting the commission. This medi-
intercourse after the death of Maximin and tation issued in the supposed divine revelation
the accession of Gordian in 238. Reckoning to him in the dead of the night of one of the
backwards the five years, Gregory did not most explicit formularies of the creed of the
reach Caesarea before 233, and probably later church of the 3rd cent., " after he had been
and did not leave the " Paradise " until 238 deeply considering the reason of the faith, and
at the earliest, when he pronounced his Pane- sifting disputations of all sorts." Gregory
gyric. This document is of interest from the saw a vision of St. John and the mother of the
testimony it bears to the doctrine of the Lord, and the latter commanded the former
Trinity and the light it throws upon the faith to lay before Gregory the true faith. Apart
of Gregory. Bp. Bull has laid great emphasis from this romance, the formulary attributed
upon the passage (Orat. de Origine, cap. iv.) to Gregory is undoubtedly of high antiquity,
in which Gregory offers his praise to the and Lardner [Credibility, vol. ii. p. 29) does
Father, and then to " the Champion and not argue with his wonted candour in his
Saviour of our souls, His first-born Word, the endeavour to fasten upon it signs of later
Creator and Governor of all things, . . being
. origin.* It is singularly free from the peculiar
the truth, the wisdom, the power of the phrases which acquired technical significance
Father Himself of all things, and besides being in the 4th cent., and yet maintains a most
both in Him and absolutely united to Him uncompromising antagonism to Sabellian and
(drexJ'w? Tjvufjifi'Oi), the most perfect and Unitarian heresy. Moreover, Gregory of
living and animate word of the primal mind." Nyssa asserts that when he uttered his
Bp. Bull rightly calls attention to the prae- encomium, the autograph MS. of this creed was
Nicene character of these phrases, which yet in possession of the church at Neocaesarea.
substantially agree with the deliverance of the He adds that the church had been continually
Nicene Fathers {Def. Nic. Creed, vol. i. p. 331). initiated (^i^iTra7a;7frra() by means of this
They are of importance in estimating the authen- confession of Gregory's faith. This statement
ticity and significance of other documents. Basil confirmed (£/>. 204, Bas. 0pp. Paris ed.
Immediately on his return to Neocaesarea t. iii. p. 303), saying that in his tender age,
Gregory received a letter from Origen {PJiilo- when residing in Neocaesarea, he had been
calia, c. 13), revealing the teacher's extra- taught the words of Gregory by his sainted
ordinary regard for his pupil, whom he de- grandmother Macrina, and (de Spir. Sancto,
scribes as "my most excellent lord and c. 29, ib. p. 62) he declared the tenacity with
venerable son." Gregory is exhorted to study which the ways and words of Gregory had
all philosophies, as a preparation for Christian- been preserved by that church, even to the
ity and to aid the interpretation of Holy mode of reciting the doxology. Moreover,
Scripture. He is thus to spoil the Egyptians Basil attributed to his influence the orthodoxy
of their fine gold, in order to make vessels for of a whole succession of bishops from Gregory
the sanctuary, and not idols of his own. He to the Musonius of his own day {Ep. 204). In
is then urged with some passion to study the addressing the Neocaesareans (Ep. 207, ib.
Scriptures, and to seek from God by prayer p. 311), he warns them against twisting the
the light he needs (see Ante-Nic. Library, words of Gregory. The formulary must be
Origen's works, vol. i. 388-390, for a transla- * The Creed is as follows in Bull's trans. :

tion of this letter). Shortly after his return " There is one God, Father of Him Who is the living
Gregory became bishop of his native city, and Word, subsisting Wisdom and Power and Eternal Im-
one of the most celebrated (Sia/SoTjros) bishops press (xapa«TT)po? aiSiov), Perfect Begetter of the
Perfect, Father of the only-begotten Son. There is
of the age (Eus. H. E. vi. 30, and vii. 14).
one Lord, Alone of the alone, God of God, Impress
The curious details of his ordination are and Image of the Godhead, the operative Word ;

referred to in Basil's Menol. Graec. (Nov. 17), Wisdom comprehensive of the system of the universe,
where it is stated that he was ordained by and Power productive of the whole creation ; true
Phaedimus, bp. of Amasea, when the two Son of true Father, Invisible of Invisible, and Incor-
were at a distance from each other. Our only ruptible of Incorruptible, and Immortal of Immortal,
guide for the subsequent details of his life is and Eternal of Eternal. And there is one Holy Ghost,
Gregory of Nyssa. Some of that writer's
Who hath His being of God, Who liath appeared
(that is to mankind, fir; Aa£ J) tois di'(*pui7roi?, a clause
most extraordinary statements are in a which Greg, of Nyssa gives, but which is not found
measure vouched for by his brother Basil the in some of the codices) through the Son, Image of the
Great, and by Rufinus in his expansion of the Son, Perfect of the Perfect ; Life, the Cause of all
history of Eusebius. As the later father tells them that live Holy Fountain, Holiness, the Be-
;

the story, the young and saintly student, on stower of sanctitication, in Whom is manifested God

reaching home, was entreated by the entire


the Father Who is over all and in all, and God the
.Son, Who is through all. A perfect Trinity, not
population to remain as their magistrate and divided nor alien in glory and eternity and dominion
. '
404 GREGORIUS GREGORIUS
distinguished from the ^Kdeats t^s Kara /n^pos burner, as bishop over the neighbouring city
irlcTTews, which is now found among the dubious of Comana. He was preferred to men of
writings of Gregory, and which even Labbe eloquence and station by reason of his humble
confounded with it. A very important sen- self-consecration to God, and justified the
tence which has been variously attributed to choice by reason of his excellent discourse,
the saint and his biographer follows the holy living, and martyr death.
formula as given in the Life. Dr. Burton The great missionary success of Gregory and
referred it to Gregory of Nyssa. Modern the rapid growth of the Church must have
editors call attention to the fact that Gregory preceded the persecution under Decius, which
of Nazianzus (Oral. lo) refers to the closing began in 250 and 251. The edict was fero-
sentences as the substance of the formula it- cious, and, in the hands of sympathetic
self. It runs as follows " There is therefore governors, cruelly carried out. [Decius.]
:

nothing created or servile in the Trinity nor Gregory advised those who could do so to save
;

anything superinduced, as though previously themselves and their faith by flight and
non-existing and introduced afterwards. concealment. His enemies pursued him into
Never therefore was the Son wanting to the his retreat, but Gregory of Nyssa says that they
Father, nor the Spirit to the Son ; but there found in place of the bishop and his deacon two
is ever the same Trinity, unchangeable and trees. This " prodigy " differs so profoundly
unalterable " (cf. Migne, Pair. Gk. vol. x. (as do others in the same writer) from the N.T.
p. 988). Great difference of opinion has miracles, both in character and motive, that
prevailed as to the genuineness of this docu- they form an instructive hint as to the ethnic
ment thus Bingham, Bull, Cave, Tillemont and imaginative source of the whole cycle.
;

(iv. 327), Ceillier, Hahn (cf. Dorner's Person In 257 Gregory returned to Neocaesarea,
of Christ, A. ii. 482), Mohler (Athan. i. 105), and when, in 258, peace was restored to the~
have defended it, and Lardner, Whiston, church, he ordered annual feasts in commem-
Miinscher, Gieseler, Herzog (Abriss der Kir- oration of the martyrs. He is credited by his
chengesch. i. 122), contest it. Neander divided biographer with the doubtful wisdom of hoping
it into two parts, the one genuine revealing its to secure the allegiance of those who had been
Origenistic source, and the other of later in the habit of worshipping idols, by arranging
growth. Dr. Caspari has, in an appendix to ceremonials in honour of the martyrs re-
his great work, Alte und neue Quellen zur sembling that to which they had been accus-
Geschichte des Taufsymbols und der Glaubens- tomed. This time-serving is an unfavourable
regel (1879), defended it with great erudition, indication of character, and does something
and concludes that there is nothing in the to explain the melancholy defection from
formula incompatible with its being the moral uprightness and honour of many of his
production of a pupil of Origen. He shews, supposed converts. The conversion of the
moreover, that it must have been produced heathen is said to have been greatly quickened
between a.d. 260 and 265. by a fearful plague which was partly, at least,
There can be little doubt that the missionary due to Gregory's miraculous powers.
labour of Gregory was great and successful, and At his death the number of heathen who
that his personal influence was extraordinary. now remained in his diocese is said to have
A few of the marvellous occurrences detailedby dwindled to 17, the exact number of Christians
Gregory of Nyssa are referred to by Basil and found there when Phaedimus consecrated him
Rufinus. Basil tells us (de Spir. Sancto, I.e.) {Vit. Thaum. I.e. p. 954). But the Christianity
" that Gregory was a great and conspicuous of the Neocaesareans must have been in many
lamp, illuminating the church of God, and cases of a very imperfect kind, if we may
that he possessed, from the co-operation of the judge from one of the most authentic docu-
Spirit, a formidable power against the demons; ments referred to his pen, and entitled Epis-
that he turned the course of rivers by giving tola Canoniea S. Gregorii . .de Us qui in
.

them orders in the name of Christ that he barbarorum ineursione idolothyta eomederant, et
;

dried up a lake, which was the cause of strife alia quaedam peecata eommiserant. Numerous
to two brothers and that his predictions of authorities, Dodwell (Dissertationes in Cypri-
;

the future made him the equal of the other anum], Ceillier (vol. ii. p. 444), question the
prophets ; . that b)' friends and enemies of genuineness of the last, the eleventh, of
. .

the truth he was regarded, in virtue of his canons, but the conviction widely prevails that
signs and prodigies, as another Moses." But the previous ten are genuine. They refer to
Gregory of Nyssa expands into voluminous the circumstances which followed the ravages
legend the record of these deeds. With the of the Goths and Boradi in Pontus, and Asia
exception of a reference to the river Lycus, Minor generally, during the reign of Gallienus.
the Panegyric of Clregory of Nyssa contains The prevailing disorder tempted numerous
no verifying element, giving neither names, Christians in Pontus to flagrant acts of impiety
dates, nor places for these astounding por- and disloyalty. Some took possession of the
tents. They were, as Dr. Newman observes, goods of those who had been dragged into
wrought at such times and seasons as to lead bondage. Others identified themselves with
to numerous conversions. They were de- the barbarians, actually helping the heathen
scribed as well-known facts in a hortatory in their uttermost cruelty towards their
address and in ecclesiastical style. But they brethren. These facts are gathered from
contrast very forcibly with the philosophical the " canons " in which Gregory denounced
bias of Gregory's mind, and they are not re- strenuously the commission of such crimes,
ferred to until a century after their occurrence. and assigned to them their ecclesiastical
One of the most interesting facts introduced penalty. The bishop does not linger over the
by his panegyrist refers to Gregory's selection mere ceremonial uncleanness that might
of an obscure person, Alexander the charcoal follow from enforced consumptioa of meat

GREGORIUS GREGORIUS 405


offered to idols, and exonerates from blame Gregorius " the illuminator " (Gregor
(7), St.,
or any ecclesiastical anathema women who Lusavoritch), " the sun of Armenia," theapostle,
had, against their will, lost their chastity ;
first patriarch and patron saint of Armenia,
but he lays great emphasis on the vices and c. 302-331. Of his life and times the best
greed of those who had violated Christian if not the only authorities are Agathangelos,
morality for gain and personal advantage. who was secretary to Tiridates king of Armenia,
Different degrees of penalty and exclusion the persecutor and afterwards the convert of
from church privilege were assigned, and those Gregory, and Simeon Metaphrastes. A French
were argued on ground of Scripture alone. trans, of the former was printed in vol. i. of the
The epistle containing these canons was ad- Historiens del' Armcnie (1867), by Victor Lang-
dressed to an anonymous bp. of Pontus, who lois. The Life of St. Gregory by Metaphrastes
had asked his advice, c. 258, towards the end (Migne, Patr. Gk. cxv. 941-996) is evidently
of his episcopate. It reveals the imperfect drawn from Agathangelos. The silence of all
character of the wholesale conversions that Greek writers about Gregory isremarkable. The
had followed his remarkable ministry. Rev. S. C. Malan trans, the Life and Times of
Other works have been wrongly attributed St. Gregory the Illuminator from the Armenian
to Gregory ; e.g. 'iKdecn^ ttjs Kara /nipos work of the Vartabed Matthew, which is the
TTLcrTews, which Vossius published in Latin in main source of the following sketch.
1662, among the works of Gregory, and which Gregory was born c. 257 in Valarshabad, the
Cardinal Mai {Scrip. Vet. vii. p. 170) has pre- capital of the province of Ararat in Armenia.
sented in Greek from the Codex Vaticanus. His father Anak, or Anag, a Parthian Arsacid,
It is given by Migne [I.e. pp. 1103-1123). The of the province of Balkh, murdered, c. 238,
best interpretation of the title is, " A creed Chosroes I. of Armenia. The dying king com-
not of all the dogmas of the church, but only manded the whole family of Anak to be slain,
of some, in opposition to the heretics who deny but an infant was saved, carried to the Cappa-
them" (Ante-Nicene Library, vol. xx. p. 81). docian Caesarca, there brought up in the
It differs from the former confession in its Christian faith, and baptized Gregorius.
obvious and technical repudiation of Arianism, Tiridates III., son of Chosroes, recovered
and its distinct references to the later Nestor- the kingdom c. 284 by the help of Diocletian,
ian,and Eutychian heresies. Othertreatisesand whose favour he had gained and whose hatred
fragments given in edd. of his works, and also of Christianity he had imbibed. Gregory
trans, in A.-N. L., are: Capitula duodecim de became his servant, and was raised to the rank
Fide, with interpretation, attributed by Gretser of a noble. In the first year of his reign
to Gregory (ed. Ratisbon, 1741). Ad Tatianum Tiridates went to the town of Erez (Erzenga)
Dispiitatio de Animd, which must have been in Higher Armenia, to make offerings to Ana-
written by a medieval philosopher when
the hid, the patron-goddess of Armenia but
;

philosophy of Aristotle was beginning to exert Gregory, refusing to take any part in this
a new influence (Ceillier). Four Homiliae, pre- idolatry, endeavoured to turn the king from
served by Vossius, on "tlie Annunciation to the his idols, and spoke to him of Christ as the
Holy Virgin Mary," and on "Christ's Baptism," judge of quick and dead. Then followed what
are totally unlike the genuine writing of Gre- are known as " the twelve tortures of St.
gory they are surcharged with the peculiar
; Gregory," borne with unsurpassed fortitude
reverence paid to the Mother of our Lord after (but see Dowling's Armenian Church, S.P.C.K.
the controversy between Nestorius and Cj'ril, 1 9 10). After two years Tiridates ordered the
and they adopt thetest-wordsof orthodoxy cur- saint to be thrown into a muddy pit infested
rent in the Arian disputes. Two brief fragments with creeping creatures, into which malefactors
remain to be added, one a comment on Matt. vi. were wont to be hurled, in the city of Ardashat,
22-23, from a Catena, Cod. MS. and pub. by and there he lived for 14 years, being fed by
Galland, Vet. Patr. Bibl. xiv. 119, and a dis- a Christian woman named Anna. This is one
course, in Omnes Sanctos, preserved with a long of several traces in the story of an already-
Epistola praevia by Mingarelli. existing Christianity in Armenia.
Gregory was present at the first council at The king's barbarous treatment of a com-
Antioch (264) to try Paul of Samosata. His munity of religious women, who c. 300 took
brother Athenodorus accompanied him, and refuge within his domains and built a convent
they are named among the most eminent outside the city of Valarshabad, brought a
members of the council (Eus. H. E. vii. 28). plague upon him and his people, which was
Gregory was buried in the church he had only relieved when Gregory was fetched from
built in Neocaesarea, and commemorated on the pit. Gregory instructed the people, and
Nov. 17 (Cal. Ethiop.) and Nov. 23 {Cal. Arm.). at his order they built three churches where
Editions of his Works. — The most noted
have been those of Gerard Vossius, 1640, in
the King's crimes had been perpetrated, and he
called the place Etchmiadzin (the descent ( i the
4to, and in 1622, in folio. They had been Only-begotten), its Turkish name being tJtch-
published in Bibl. Patr. Colo^nein 1618. The Kilise (Three Churches). Gregory was conse-
Panegyric on Origen by Sirmond, 1605, 4to. crated bp. for Armenia c. 302, by Leontius, bp.
De la Rueincluded it in his ed. of Origensis Opera, of CaesareainCappadocia. Hiscathedral was in
vol. iv. The various fragments attributed to Valarshabad. He destroyed the idol temples,
Gregory are all pub. by Migne (Pair. Gk. vol. "conquering the devils who inhabited them "
X.). See esp. Kyssel, Gregorius Thaumaturgus i.e. the priests and supporters of the old reli-
(Leipz. 1880). His Address to Origen and Ori-
gen's Letter to Gregory have been trans, with

gion and baptized the king and his court
in the Euphrates. This national conversion
intro. and notes by W. Metcalfe (S.P.C.K.). occurred before Constantine had established
There are also translations of his works in the the church in the Roman empire, and Armenia
Anie-Nic. Lib. vol. vi. [h.r.r.] was thus the first kingdom to adopt Christian-

406 GREGORIUS GREGORIUS
ity as the religion of the state. Gregory {Hist. Ar. 21) is preferable to that of the
encouraged the reading of the Holy Scriptures, Index, Epiphi 2 = June 26, 346. [w.b.]
both of the O. and N. T. He wrote letters to Gregorius (12) Baeticus, St., bp. of Eliberi,
St. James of Nisibis, requesting him to com- Elvira, or Granada, c. 357-384 ; first men-
pose homilies on faith, love, and other virtues. tioned as resisting the famous Hosius of Cor-
In 325 Gregory is said to have been summoned dova, when under the persecution of Constan-
to the council of Nicaea, but, being himself tius Hosius gave way so far as to admit Arian
unable to go, sent his son, who brought back bishops to communion with him. This must
the decrees for the Armenian church. The have been in or before a.d. 357, the year of
venerable patriarch greatly rejoiced on reading Hosius's death. At the council of Ariminum
them, and exclaimed, " Now let us praise Him Gregorius was one of the few bishops who
Who was before the worlds, worshipping the adhered to the creed of Nicaea, and refused
most Holy Trinity and the Godhead of the to hold communion with the Arian Valens,
Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, now and ever, Ursacius, and their followers. Our authority
world without end. Amen," which words are for this is a letter to Gregorius by Eusebius of
said after the Nicene Creed in the Armenian Vercellae from his exile in the Thebaid
church (Malan. p. 327, n.). After filling the (printed among the works of St. Hilary of
country with churches and ministers, schools Poitiers, ii. 700, in Migne, Patr. Lat. x. 713).
and convents, he retired in 33 1 to lead a solitary Eusebius there acknowledges letters he had
life among the caves of Manyea in the province received from Gregorius, giving an account
of Taran, having previously consecrated his son of his conduct, and commends him highly for
Arisdages bishop in his stead. Gregory died in having acted as became a bishop. Gams,
the wilderness a.d. 332, and the shepherds, however {Kirchengesch. ii. 256-259, 279-282),
finding his dead body without knowing whose maintains that Gregorius was one of the
it was, erected over it a cairn of stones. bishops who fell into heresy at Ariminum,
The Bollandists have printed Agathangelos and further identifies him with the Gregorius
and other Lives of Gregory. ActaSS. viii.Sept. in the deputation sent by the council to Con-
pp. 295-413 ;Basil. Men. Sept. 30, in Migne, stantius and headed by Restitutusof Carthage,
Patr. Gk. cxvii. Le Quien, On Chr. i. 1355,
;
who assented to and subscribed an Arian
1371. In honour of her founder the Arme- formula of belief at Nice, in Thrace, Oct. 10,
nian church has been called the Armeno- 359, and held communion with the Arian
Gregorian. Saint-Martin (Mem. sur VArmenie, leaders, Valens, Ursacius, and others (St.
i. 436) and Langlois (Historiens, ii. 387) date Hilary of Poitiers, ex Opere Historico Frag-
his consecration a.d. 276. [l.d.] mentuni 8, in Migne, Patr. Lat. x. 702).
Gregorius (8), the Cappadocian, appointed Gregorius is generally supposed to have
by Arianizing bishops at Antioch in the been one of the leaders of the schism origin-

beginning of 340 not, apparently, of 339, as ated by Lucifer of Cagliari. This theory is
the Festal Index says, and clearly not at the supported by the terms of praise applied to
Dedication Festival in 341 as Socrates says him by the Luciferians Faustinus and Mar-

{ii. 20) to supersede Athanasius in the see of cellus in their Lihellus Precum ad Imperatores
Alexandria. As a student in the schools of (c. 9, 10, 20, 25, 27, in Migne, Patr. Lat. xiii.
Alexandria he had received kindness from 89, 90, 97, 100, 102); and also by the way St.
Athanasius (Greg. Naz. Orat. xxi. 15). He Jerome, in his Chronicle under the date 374 =
arrived on Mar. 23 (cf. Fest. Ind.), Athanasius A.D. 370 (in Migne, Patr. Lat. xxvii. 695),
having retired into concealment. That Gre- couples him with Lucifer of Cagliari, saying
gory was an Arian may be inferred from his that the latter with Gregorius a Spanish, and
appointment. Athanasius says, in an en- Philo a Libyan, bishop, " nunquam se Arianae
cyclical letter of the time, that his sympathy miscuit pravitati." Florez, however {Esp.
with the heresy was proved by the fact that Sagr. xii. 121), maintains that no certain proof
only its supporters had demanded him, and of this theory exists. Gams, on the other
that he employed as secretary one Ammon, hand {op. cit. ii. 310-314), maintains that even
who had been long before excommunicated by before the death of Lucifer, Gregorius was the
bp. Alexander for his impiety (Encycl. c. 7). recognized head of the sect. On the authority
Athanasius tells us that on Good Friday, of the Lihellus Precum, c. 25, he considers that
Gregory having entered a church, the people Gregorius, after Lucifer's return from exile in
shewed their abhorrence, whereupon he 362, visited him in Sardinia ; and he identifies
caused the prefect Philagrius publicly to with Gregorius the bishop mentioned in c. 63 as
scourge 34 virgins and married women and at Rome under the assumed name of Taorgius,
men of rank, and to imprison them. After and as having consecrated one Ephesius as
Athanasius fled to Rome, Gregory became bp. of the Luciferians there, an event which
still more bitter (Athan. Hist. Ar. 13). We he dates between 366 and 371. From the
hear of him as " oppressing the city" in 341 Lihellus Precum and the Rescript of Theodosius
{Fest. Ind.). Auxentius, afterwards Arian bp. in reply addressed to Cynegius, Gregorius was
of Milan, was ordained priest by him (Hilar. apparently alive in 384. In none of the above
in Atix. 8). The council of Sardica, at the passages is his see mentioned, as he is called
end of A.D. 343, pronounced him never to have only episcopus Hispaniarum or Hispaniensis,
been, in the church's eyes, a bishop {Hist. but it is supplied b\' St. Jerome, de Vir. Illust.
Ar. 17). He died, not by murder, as Theo- c. 105 (Hieron. Op. ii. 937, in Migne, Patr. Lat.
doret says (ii. 4) through a confusion with xxiii. 703). Opinions have been much divided
George, but after a long illness {Fest. Ind.), as to the book de Fide, attributed to him by
about ten months after the exposure of the Jerome. The Bollandists {Acta SS. Ap. iii.
Arian plot against bp. Euphrates i.e. c. Feb. 270) say " etiamnum latet." It was formerly
A.D. 345. This date, gathered from Athanasius supposed to be the de Trinitate now ascribed
GREGORIUS GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS 407
to Faustinus. Gams (p. 314) thinks that this, Gregory and his brother went to Caesarea in
though really written by Faustinus, is the work Palestine to pursue the study of oratory {Orat.
to which St. Jerome alludes. vii. 6, Op. ii. 201)
; Caesarius departing thence
The materials for a Life of Gregorius are thus to Alexandria, and Gregory remaining to study
scanty, the Lf6e//i«sP^^CMwbeingof very doubt- in the school made famous by Origen, Pam-
ful authority, and widely different estimates philus, and Eusebius. Thespesius was then the
have been formed of him. But the two charges master of greatest renown, and Euzoi'us was a
of Arianism and I.uciferianism seem mutually fellow-pupil with Gregory (Hieron. de Eccles.
destructive. [f-d.] Script, c. 113). From Palestine Gregory went
Gregorius (13) I., bp. of Nazianzus in Cap- to Alexandria {Orat. I.e.). Here Didymus filled
padocia, father of Gregorius Nazianzenus. the chair of Pantaenus, Clement, and Origen,
[Gregorius (14).] Originally a member of the and Athanasius the episcopal throne, though
Hypsistarii, a sect numerous in Cappadocia, probably an exile at the time. Gregory pressed
he was converted to the Catholic faith, married on to Athens. A ship of Aegina offered him
a lady named Nonna, and was soon afterwards passage {Orat. xviii. 31, Op. i. 351). Off
consecrated bp. of Nazianzus, c. 329. He Cyprus a fierce storm struck her. The thunder,
was a pillar of the orthodox party, though lightning, darkness, creaking of the yards,
weak enough to sign the creed of Ariminum in shaking of the masts, cries of the crew, appeals
deference to Constantius, a.d. 360. He took for help to Christ, even by those who before
part in the ordination of Basil to the see of had not known Him, all added to the terror
Caesarea [Basilius] he opposed the attempts of the scene. The storm continued 22 days,
;

of the emperor Valens, a.d. 371, to overthrow during which they saw no chance of deliverance.
the Catholic faith ;
yet he, as well as Basil, Gregory's chief fear was lest he should die with-
was spared the banishment inflicted on many out baptism. In prayer he dedicated himself
bishops (Socr. iv. 11). After an episcopate of again to God, and sought for help. The prayer
45 years, he died a.d. 374. His son frequently was answered, and the rescued crew were so
mentions his good father, both in his sermons affected that they all accepted Gregory's God.
and his verses, and pronounced a funeral Among the Athenian sophists of the day,
oration over him. Greg. Naz. Oratio xviii. none were more famous than Himerius and
in Migne, Patr. Gk. xxxv. 330 Le Quien, Proaeresius, with whom Gregory continued
;

Oriens Christ, i. 411. [l.d.] the study of oratory. At Athens Gregory and
Gregorius (14) Nazianzenus, bp. (370-390) of Basil were together again {Orat. xliii. 15 Op. ;

Sasiraa and of Constantinople, has been i. 7S1) Gregory rendering the freshman Basil
;

fortunate in his biographers. He left them various friendly offices, such as exempting
abundant materials in his works, especially in him from the rough practical joking which
a large collection of letters and a long auto- all who joined the Athenian classes had to
biographical poem. pass through. [Basilius.] The Armenians,
St. Gregory takes his distinctive title from jealous of the newcomer, whose fame had pre-
Nazianzus, a small town in S.W. Cappadocia, ceded him, and with some of the old feeling
near which, in a district known as the Tiberine of antagonism against Cappadocia, tried to
(Ep. ii. Op. ii. 2; Basil, Ep. iv.), at a village entrap him in sophistical debates. When they
called Arianzus, where his father had an estate, were being defeated, Gregory, feeling the
he was born. Both his parents are known to honour of Athens at stake, came to the rescue,
us. His father bore the same name [Gre- but soon saw their real object, and left them
gorius (13)] and belonged in early life to the to join his friend {Orat. xliii. 16, 17 ib. 782,;

sect of the Hypsistarii {Orat. xviii. 5 Op. i. 783). These things are trifles, but had impor-
;

333). His mother's name was Nonna, a child of tant effects. The two friends, rendered
Christian parents (Philtatius and Gorgonia), obnoxious to their companions, were bound
and is praised by her son as a model of Chris- the more closely to each other. Their fellow-
tian virtues. To her life and prayers he attri- students, for various reasons, bore various
butes his father's conversion. names and surnames. The two friends were,
The date of his birth we may reasonably and desired to be called. Christians they had ;

fix from his own words in 325-329. all things in common, and " became as one
Nonna, in fulfilment of a vow, dedicated mind possessing two bodies " {Orat. xliii. 20,
him to the Lord, but not by baptism. She 21; ib. 785, 786; Carm. xi. 221-235; Op.
taught him to read the Scriptures, and led ii. 687). Among other students then at the
him to regard himself as an Isaac offered in university was Julian the Apostate. Gregory
sacrifice to God, Who had given him to another claims that he had even then discerned his
Abraham and Sarah. He, as another Isaac, character in his very looks and that he used ;

dedicated himself. He rejoices to tell of the to warn their fellow-students that Rome was
examples set him at home and of the bent cherishing a serpent (O^'a/. v. 24, Op. i. 162).
given to his studies by companionship with Gregory must have spent at Athens prob-
good men. The tutor to whose care the ably not less than ten years. He went there
brothers were committed was Carterius, a beardless youth he left about his 30th year.
;

perhaps the same who was afterwards head of To the effect of those years the matter and
the monasteries of Antioch and instructor of form alike of his work bear witness.
Chrysostom (Tillem. Memoires, ix. 370). Leaving probably about the beginning of
At Caesarea in Cappadocia probably was 356, Gregory went first to Constantinople,
conimenced Gregory's friendship with Basil, washing to see the new Rome before his return
which, tried by many a shock, survived them to Asia. Here he unexpectedly met his
all, and was the chief influence which brother Caesarius, journeying to Nazianzus
moulded not only the life of both friends, but from Alexandria. The mother had longed
also the theology of the Christian church. to see both her sons return together, and
408 GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS
Gregory has left a touching account of their Tillem. Mem. ix. 352). Nicetas assumes that
meeting ; and at this point some of the the congregation compelled Gregory to accept
biographers fix his baptism. Gregory himself ordination (cf. Carm. xi. de Vita sua, 345-348,
tells us that he now laid down the plan of his Op. ii.) Such forced ordinations were not
life. Every power he possessed was to be unknown (Bingham, Orig. Eccles. iv. 2-5 and ix.
devoted to God but the way seemed divided
; 7, i). Basil was in the same way made priest.
into two, and he knew not which to take. Gregory preached in the church at Nazian-
Elias, the sons of Jonadab, the Baptist, were zus on the Easter Day following his ordination,
types of the life that attracted him but on
;
and had expected that a crowded church
the other hand was the study of the Scriptures, would have welcomed his return and have
for which the desert offered no opportunities ;
applauded his first sermon but the church
;

and the advanced age of his parents presented was almost deserted. Gregory could not be
claims which seemed to be imperative duties. ignorant of the cause of this estrangement.
He resolved to live the strict life of an His flight from the work of the priesthood
ascetic and yet perform the duties of society demanded an explanation, and Gregory deter-
{Carni. i. de Rebus suis, 1. 65 seq. Op. ii. 635),
; mined to give an answer worthy of the
but denying himself even the pleasure of question and of himself. It is contained in
music {ib. 1. 69). the second oration [Op. i. ii. 65). In no
But in the midst of various trifling irrita- part of his writings do we find proof of greater
tions of domestic duty, which went far to mar study. It is practically a treatise on the
the life he had marked out for himself, Gregory pastoral office, and forms the foundation of
heard from Basil, who had resolved to found Chrysostom's de Sacerdotio and of the Cura
a coenobitic system in Pontus, and asked his Pastoralis of Gregory the Great, while writers
friend to join him. Gregory answered by in all ages have directly or indirectly drawn
proposing to Basil to join them at the Tiberine, largely from it. The earlier part treats of the
where the ascetic life in common could be reasons for his flight (i) he was wholly un-
:

followed and the duties of home performed prepared for the ordination (2) he had
;

{Ep. 1. Op. ii. i). Basil did visit Arianzus, always been attracted by the monastic life ;

but remained only a short time. From (3) he was ashamed of the life and character
Caesarea he again wrote to Gregory, after of the mass of the clergy (4) he did not at
which Gregory set out for Pontus. dne sub- that time, he did not now
;


and this reason
stantial result of their joint labours is pre- weighed with him most of all think himself —
served in the Philocalia, a series of extracts fit to rule the flock of Christ and govern the
from the exegetical works of Origen. Gregory minds of men " (Oral. ii. 9). He then discusses
himself speaks of this work, which he sent as for 40 sections the duties and difficulties of
a present to his friend Theodosius of Tyana the true pastor (ib. 10-49). " His first duty is
(Ep. cxv. Op. ii. 103). We know from to preach the word, and this is so difficult that
Gregory's own words also that he took part in to fulfil it ideally would require universal
composing the famous " Rules " of Basil. It is knowledge. Theological knowledge is abso-
not clear how long he remained in Pontus. lutely necessary, especially of the doctrine of
Clemencet thinks two or three years, and the the Trinity, lest he fall into the Atheism of
supposition agrees with Gregory's regret that Sabellius, or the Judaism of Arius, or the
he had but tasted enough of the life there to Polytheism too common among the orthodox.
excite his longing for more (Oral. ii. 6, Op. It is necessary to hold to the truth that there
i. 14). The silence of Gregory with regard to is one God, and to confess that there are three
his return may be due to another cause. persons, and attributes proper to each but ;

Constantius had required the bishops through- for this there is need of the Spirit's help.
out the empire to accept the creed of Rimini Much more is it difficult to expound it to a
(a.d. 359-360), and the bp. of Nazianzus, popular audience, both from the preacher's
though hitherto faithful to the Nicene doc- imperfection and the people's want of pre-
trine, did so. The monks of his diocese were paration. Zeal not according to knowledge
devoted to Athanasius, and there followed a leads men away from the truth. Then, there
division in the church, which Gregory alone is the desire of vainglory, with inexperience,
could heal. He induced the bishop to make and her constant attendant, rashness, incon-
a public confession of orthodoxy, and deliv- stancy, based on ignorance of the Scripture ;

ered a sermon on the occasion (Oral. vi. Op. and a subjective eclecticism which ends in an
i. 179 seq.). If this division at Nazianzus uncertain creed, and leads men to doubt of
occurred in 360, we have the reason of truth, as if a blind or deaf man were to place
Gregory's return (Tillem. Mem. ix. 345 ;
the evil not in himself but in the light of the
Schrockh, Kirchengesch. xiii. 287 Ullmann,
; sun or the voice of his friend. It is more easy
Gregorius von Naztanz. s. 41). If with to instruct minds wholly ignorant than those
Clemencet and others (Op. i. pp. xciv. seq.) which have received false teaching but the ;

it is assigned to 363-364, we must suppose that work of weeding, as well as that of sowing,
the return was due to the general claim of filial must be done. The work of a spiritual ruler
duty. In any case he came to Nazianzus, and is like that of a man trying to manage a herd
received letters from Basil asking him to of beasts, old and young, wild and tame. He
return to Pontus {Ep. vi. ad fin.. Op. ii. p. 6). must, therefore, be single in will to rule the
The aged bishop felt the need of support and whole body, manifold to govern each member
help, and resolved to overrule the scruples of it. Some must be fed with milk some ;

which made Gregory shrink from the respon- with more solid food. For all this who is
sibilities of the priesthood. The ordination sufficient There are spiritual hucksters who
?
occurred on one of the high festivals, probably adulterate the word of truth but it is better
;

at Christmas, a.d. 361 (Nicetas, ii. 1021 to be led than to lead others, and to learn than
;
1}

GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS 409


attempt to teach what one does not know. them. made
their father weary of life, and
It
Men are foolish if they do not know their own had to be hidden from their mother {Ep. vii.
ignorance ;rash, if they know it, and yet Op. ii. 7). The effect of this letter upon Cae-
lightly undertake this work. The Jews did not sarius we may judge from his declaration
allow young men to read all parts of the before Julian " In a word, I am a Christian,
:

Scriptures but in the church there is no such


; and I mean to be one," and from the excla-
bound placed between teaching and learning. mation of the emperor " O happy father of
:

A mere boy, who does not know the very such unhappy children " {Oral. vii. 13,
!

names of the sacred writings, if he can babble Op. i.206 cf. De;Broglie, Constance, ii.
a few pious words, and these caught by hear- 207). Gregory esteemed the victory of
ing, not by reading, becomes a teacher. Men Caesarius as a more precious gift than the half
spend more time and pains in learning to of the empire (Orat. vii. 14, ad init.). But
dance or play the flute than teachers of things Julian had bitter revenge in store. He
divine and human spend in studying them. ordered that no Christian should teach profane-
The love of vainglory is at the root of this evil. literature. This caused Gregory to compose
The true ideal is to be found in the lives of many of the poems now extant, prob-
disciples like Peter or Paul, who became all ably as reading-books for Christian schools.
things to all men that they might gain some. Towards the end of 363 or the beginning of
The false teachers incur great danger, and the 364 he wrote two Invectives against Julian
pastor's sin causes the public woe. The \Orat. iv. Op. i. 7S-147 Orat. v. ib. 147-175).
;

prophets dwelt on the fearful position of the The emperor had fallen, pierced by an arrow,
shepherds who feed themselves the apostles
; in the previous J une. The orator in these
and Christ Himself taught what the true !
philippics held him up as the sum of all that
shepherds should be ; and His condemnation was I
vile. In the first sentence he is called
of Scribes and Pharisees includes all false " the dragon, the apostate, the Assyrian, the
teachers." Day and night did these thoughts I
common enemy, the great mind " (Is. x. 12,
possess Gregory. He was aware of the objec- |
LXX) and this sentence is typical. These
;

tions of priests that the candle should be !


orations, looked at dispassionately, remind us
placed on the candlestick, and the talent not ;
rather of Demosthenes or Cicero than of a
hidden ; but no time of preparation for the Christian bishop. The admirers of the saint
priesthood can be too long, and haste is full find it still more difficult to explain the
of danger. He dreaded both its duties and panegyric on the Arian Constantius, which
its dignity. " He who has not learned to these discourses contain. He is " the most
speak the hidden wisdom of God, and to bear divine and Christ-loving of emperors, and his
the cross of Christ, should not enter upon the great soul is summoned from heaven. The
priesthood. For himself, he would prefer a sin of his life was the inhuman humanity
private life. A great man ought to undertake which spared Julian" (Orat. i%'. 34 seq.. Op.
great things a small man small things. Only
; i. 93 seq.). Gregory, indeed, speaks elsewhere
that man can build the tower who has where- of three things of which Constantius repented
with to build it." Such are the reasons ]
when dying (i) the murder of his relations
:
;

Gregory gives for his flight. He adds those (2) that he had named Julian Caesar ; (3) that
which led to his return. " (i) The longing he had given himself to the dogma of the
he had for them and which he saw they newer creed (Orat. xxi. 26, Op. i. 403 a).
had for him (2) the white hairs and feeble
'

Yet he knew that the emperor gave his


;


limbs of his holy parents the father who was support to impiety, and framed laws against
to him as an angel, and the mother to whom \ the orthodox doctrine (Orat. xxv. 9, Op. i.
he owed also his spiritual birth. There is a 461 a) nor could he have been ignorant that
;

time for yielding as for everything else (3) it was by Euzoius that baptism was admin-
the example of the prophet Jonah and this
weighed most with him, for every letter of
— ;

istered to the penitent. The character of


Constantius is clearly used as an oratorical

i

Scripture is inspired for our use who deserved contrast to that of Julian.
pardon, but he himself would not if he still:
j

While Gregory was thus employed at


refused. The denunciations of disobedience Nazianzus, Basil returned from Pontus to
in Holy Scripture are no less severe than those Caesarea, where Eusebius had been made
against the unworthy pastor. On either side bishop, and was ordained against his will.
is danger. The middle is the only safe course He informed his friend of this, and Gregory

;

^ not to seek the priesthood, nor yet to refuse \


replied in a letter which is important as shew-
it. There is a merit in obedience but for
; ing his thoughts about the position in which
disobedience there is hardly any remedy. 1
both he and Basil had been placed. " Now
Some holy men are more, others less, forward •

the thing is done it is necessary to fulfil one's


to undertake rule. Neither are to be blamed." —
duty such at least is the way in which I look
Such is the general character of the famous
Top Ai'toO 'AwoXoyrtTLKos. Did it alone remain
j

at it — especially in the present distress, when


many tongues of heretics are raised against us,
to us, Gregory must still have been thought !
and not to disappoint the hopes of those who
of as one of the four pillars of the Greek I have put their faith in us and in our past
church, and we should still read the chief life" (Ep. viii. Op. ii. 8). A difference arose
traits of his personal character. It was writ- I ere long between Eusebius and Basil. Its
ten in 362. Julian the Apostate had entered origin is not known, and Gregory thought it
Constantinople on Dec. 11, 361, and persuaded
j
'

better that it should not be (Orat. xliii. 28,


Gregory's brother Caesarius to remain at j
Op. i. 792). It shews Gregory in the character
court. Gregory was then with Basil, who had of peacemaker. The warm friend of Basil, he
indignantly rejected like advances, and he j

was no less an admirer of the bishop, and an


blushes that the son of a bishop should accept I advocate for the rights of authority. Invited

410 GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS


by the bishop to fillthe place vacated by ance of the position and the special qualifica-
Basil's retirement to Pontiis, he does not tions for it possessed by Basil, and promises
hesitate to assert that the treatment of Basil his assistance if they propose to elect him
was unjust and to demand reconciliation with {Ep. xli. Op. ii. 35). He wrote also to
his friend as the price of his own influence Eusebius of Samosata by the hands of the
{Epp. xvi.-xx. Op. ii. i6). An indignant reply deacon Eustathius, urging him to go to
from Eusebius only called forth stronger Caesarea and promote Basil's election {Ep.
letters from the same standpoint [Epp. xvii. xlii. Op. ii. 37). Eusebius yielded to this
and xviii. Op. ii. 17, 18), and an equally plain request, but the vote of the aged bp. of
letter to Basil, telling him that Eusebius was Nazianzus was also needed. An illness he had
disposed to be reconciled to him, and urging disappeared as soon as he started. The son
him to be first in the victory of submission thought it prudent to remain at home, but
(Ep. xix. ib.). Hereupon Basil returned to sent by his father's hands a letter to Eusebius,
Caesarea, and gave his powerful aid to the expressing his esteem and excusing his ab-
bishop in the dangers threatening the church, sence, and referring to the miracle of his
or rather became bishop in reality, while

Eusebius was still so in name " the keeper
father's restored health {Ep. xliv. Op. ii. 39).
He did not go even after the election, but
of the lion, the leader of the leader " (Orat. contented himself at first with writing letters
xliii. 33, Op. i. 796). When peace was thus which witness to his wisdom and affection
established, Gregory returned again to Nazian- {Epp. xlv. and xlvi. Op. ii. 40, 41). When the
zus. Here new troubles awaited him. Cae- storm had subsided he went in person, but
sarius had been chosen by Valens to be declined the position of first among the
treasurer of Bithynia, and once more his presbyters, or probably that of coadjutor
brother was distressed at seeing him among bishop {rrivde t/;s KaOedpas Ti/tu)i', Orat. xliii.
the servants of an adversary of the true faith. 39, Op. i. 801), which Basil offered him. But
On Oct. II, 368, Nicaea was almost destroyed in the opposition caused by the bishops
by an earthquake. Gregory made this the defeated in the election, and in the persecution
ground of an earnest appeal to Caesarius to organized by the prefect Modestius at the
abandon his office [Ep. xx. Op. ii. p. 19). He command of Valens, Gregory was foremost
was on the point of yielding when he suddenly as a personal friend and as a defender of the
died. The funeral oration delivered by faith (Socr. iv. 11).
Gregory is placed by Jerome first in the list of In 370 Valens made a civil division of
the orator's celebrated works {Catal. Scrip. Cappadocia into two provinces, and in 372
Eccles. 117). It narrates, in the language of Anthimus, bp. of Tyana, claimed equal rights
fraternal love, the deeds of a noble life, and with the bp. of Caesarea i.e. the rights of
seeks in that of Christian submission to con- metropolitan of Cappadocia Secunda, of which
sole his parents and his friends {Orat. vii. Op. Tyana was the capital. Basil resisted this
198, et seq.). Sixteen epitaphs remain to claim, and Gregory, who had returned to
shew how often Gregory mourned his loss Nazianzus, offered, in a letter full of affection-
{Ep. vi.-xxi. Op. ii. 1111-1115). The death ate admiration {Ep. xlviii. Op. ii. 40), to visit
of Caesarius brought trouble to Gregory from and support his friend and went to Caesarea.
the administration of his estate which had been Thence they proceeded together to the foot of
left to the poor. Against extortioners who Mount Taurus in Cappadocia Secunda, where
tried to seize it he appealed to his friend was a chapel dedicated to St. Orestes, and
Sophronius, prefect of Constantinople {Ep. where the people were accustomed to pay
xxix. Op. ii. 24); and his troubles called forth their tithes in kind. On their return they
the kind offices of Basil. He himself tells us found the mountain-passes at Sasima guarded
plaintively how he would gladly have fled by followers of Anthimus. A struggle took
these business worries, but felt it his duty to place, and Gregory implies that he was
share the burden with his father {Carm. xi. personally injured {Carm. xi. 453, Op. ii. 699).
375-380, Op. ii. 695). About the same time He seems soon afterwards to have returned to
another loss befell the house of Nazianzus in Nazianzus, whither he was followed by Basil,
the death of Gorgonia, and once again Gregory who had resolved (by way of securing his own
delivered a funeral discourse of most touching rights) to make Sasima a bishopric, and
gracefulness {Orat. viii. Op. i. 218 et seq.). Gregory the first bishop. In this he was
These sorrows weighed heavily on Gregory's aided by the elder Gregory, and the son yielded
spirit; and while in public discourses he against his own will {Orat. ix. Op. i. 234-238).
sought to console others, his private poems At the last moment he fled, but was pursued
shew how hard he found it to console himself. by Basil, and at length consecrated {Orat. x.
" Already his whitening hairs shew his grief, Op. i. 239-241). But he still put off the duties
and his stiffening limbs are inclining to the of his see, until Basil sent Gregory of Nyssa
evening of a sad day" {Carm. de Rehus suts, to remonstrate. But Anthimus was again
i. 177-306, Op. ii. 641 sqq.). In 370 Eusebius prepared to resist by armed force, and Gregory
died in the arms of Basil, who at once invited finally abandoned duties which he had never
Gregory to Caesarea on the plea that he was willingly accepted. Basil wrote reproaching
himself in extremis. The latter regarded this him, and he replied in the same tone. " He
as a pretext, and in a tone of mingled affection would not fight with the warlike Anthimus,
and reproach declined to go until after the for he was himself little experienced in war,
election of the archbishop {Ep. xl. Op. ii. 34). and liable to be wounded, and one, moreover,
The invitation to the bp. of Nazianzus to be who preferred repose. Why should he fight
present at the election was answered, as all the for sucking-pigs and chickens, which after all
editors with almost certainty judge, by the were not his own, as if it were a question of
hands of the son. He dwells upon the import- souls and of canons ? And why should he rob

GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS 411


" troops they took refuge in the church, and he
the metropolis of the illustrious Sasima ?
(Ep. xlviii. Op. ii. 44). The "illustrious consented to hear Gregory's plea. While the
Sasima " must be descrilDed in the words of the Invective against Julian reminds us of the
poem, de Vita sua " On a much frequented
: Philippics or the de Corona, we have here an
road of Cappadocia, at a point where it is oration which has borne without injury com-
divided into three, is a halting-place, where is parison with the pyo Ligario or pro Marcello,
neither water nor grass, nor any mark of or Chrysostom's plea for Eutropius or Flavian
civilization. It is a frightful and detestable (Benoit, p. 355). The first part points the af-
little village. Everywhere you meet nothing people to the true source of comfort the
flicted ;

but dust, noises, waggons, howls, groans, petty secondis addressed to princes and magistrates.
officials, instruments of torture, chains. The " The prefect was subject to the authority of
whole population consists of foreigners and the teacher, which was higher than his own.
travellers. Such was my church of Sasima " Did he wield the sword ? it was for Christ.
(Carm. xi. 439-446, Op. ii. 696). Other letters Was he God's image ? so were the poor
were exchanged, but nothing could change his suffering people. The most divine thing was
determination. He was at length prevailed to do good ;let him not lose the opportunity.
upon by his father to leave the mountains, Did he see the white hair of the aged bishop,
whither he had fled for refuge, and to become and think of his long, unblemished priesthood,
coadjutor at Nazianzus. This did not deliver whom, it mav be, the very angels found worthy
him from the quarrel between Basil and of homage {Xarpetas), and did not that move
Anthimus, for Nazianzus was in the new him ? " "I adjure you by the name of
province of Cappadocia Secunda, and the bp. Christ, by Christ's emptying Himself for us,
of Tyana soon visited the Gregories and by the sufferings of Him Who cannot suffer,
sought to gain them to his cause. They held by His cross, by the nails which have delivered
firm to Basil, but Anthimus then asked the me from sin, by His death and burial, resur-
son to interfere between Basil and himself, and rection and ascension ; and lastly, by this
to seek a conference. The option of having common table where we sit together, and by
one at all, its time and place if resolved upon, these symbols of my salvation, which I con-
all was left to Basil's will, and yet he felt secrate with the same mouth that addresses

injured and expressed his dissatisfaction at to you this prayer in the name, I say, of this
Gregory's conduct. The latter felt and said, sacred mystery which lifts us up to heaven " !

in plain terms, " that his friend was puffed He concluded by praying " that the prefect
up by his new dignity, and unmindful of what may find for himself such a judge as he should
was due to others. He had himself offended be for them, and that all meet with merciful
Anthimus by his firm Basilism (lioaiXii/xov). judgment here and hereafter " {Orat. xvii. Op.
Was it just that Basil should be offended for i. 317 et seq.) Early in 374 the elder Gregory
the same reason ? " {Ep. 1. Op. ii. 44). He died, and the son delivered a discourse, at
soon gave further proof of affection by taking which his mother Nonna and his friend Basil
an active part in the election of Eulalius as were present, and which was an eulogy of both
bp. of Doaris, and by a remonstrance on the his parents and of his friend (Orat. xviii. Op.
subject of Basil's teaching, which he felt was i. 327). Nonna survived her husband only a
due from his friendship. He had heard men few months, and died as she knelt at the Holy
cavil at Basil's orthodoxy, and assert that he Table {Epit. Ixv.-c. Op. ii. 1133-1149). The
did not hold the Divinity of the Third Person brother and sister were already dead. Gre-
in the Trinity and humbly asked him, for gory was left alone. His first care was to

;

the sake of silencing his detractors he him- devote his large fortune wholly to the poor,
self had no doubt —to express in definite words reserving only a small plot of land at Arianzus
what he held as the true doctrine {Ep. Iviii. and then to invite the bishops to elect a suc-
;

Op. ii. 50). Basil did not accept the friendly cessor to the see. Fear lest the church should
letter in the same spirit. Gregory saw from be rent by heresy induced him to exercise the
his reply that it had given pain, in spite of his office temporarily. Two reasons determined
care. Yet he submits, and will place himself him not to preach at Nazianzus again (i)
entirely in Basil's hands {Ep. lix. Op. ii. 53). that he may cause them to elect a bishop to
The year 373 was an " annus mirabilis " for succeed his father (2) that his silence may
;

Nazianzus, and called forth two remarkable check the mania for theological discussion
discourses from Gregory. An epidemic among which was spreading through the Eastern
their cattle, a season of drought, and a de- church and leading everybody to teach the
structive tempest in harvest reduced the things of the Spirit without the Spirit.
people to absolute poverty. They turned in For two years after the bishop's death
their need to the church, and compelled Gre- Gregory in vain pressed for the election of a
gory to address them. The discourse seems successor. His love of retirement was now,
to have been impromptu. Gregory " regrets as all through life, a powerful influence, and
that he is the constrained speaker rather than towards the end of 375 he disappeared sud-
his father —that the stream is made to flow denly, and found refuge for 3 years at Seleucia

while the fountain is dry and then urges that in Isauria, at a monastery devoted to the
divine punishments are all in mercy, and that virgin Thecla {Carm. xi. 549, Op. ii. 701).
human sins are the ordinary causes of public In the beginning of 379 Basil died, and
woes " ; then plainly puts before his hearers Gregory wrote to comfort his brother Gregory
the special sins of their city and invites them of Nyssa. He could neither visit Basil in
to penitence and change of life {Orat. xvi. Op. illness nor be present at his funeral, for he
i. 299). The inability of the inhabitants to was himself then dangerously ill {Ep. Ixxvi.
pay the imperial taxes led to an insurrection. Op. ii. 65), but he expressed his love in 12
At the approach of the prefect with a body of epitaphs. A letter from Gregory to Eudocius
412 GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS
the rhetorician, written soon after, speaks of was to come from a division in the flock itself.
the loss which made him regard death as " the This started from the schism of Antioch, which
only deliverance from the ills which weighed had spread through the whole church ; but
upon him " [Ep. Ixxx. Op. ii. 72). the immediate question was one of competi-
But the chief work of his life yet lay before tion for the bishopric. Gregory had kept
him. At the Nicaean council, Alexander, aloof from this quarrel, but some of his
then bp. of Constantinople, signed the decrees followers took an active part in it, and endea-
which condemned Arius. He was succeeded voured to draw from him a decision for one or
by Paul, who was devoted to the true faith, other of the rivals. Some seem to have
and suffered martyrdom in a.d. 351. For favoured Paulinus, some Meletius. Gregory
30 years after the death of Paul, Constanti- preached a sermon on Peace (Drat. xxii. Op.
nople was the battle-ground of a constant war i. 414-425), dwelling " on its blessings, and the
with heresy. The followers of Manes and inconsistency of their faith, servants of the
Novatus, Photinus and Marcellus, Sabellius God of peace as they claimed to be, and their
and ApoUinaris, were numerous there ; and practice. Their duty was to remain united
the adherents of the Nicene faith, few in when the faith was not in question to weaken ;

number, humiliated, crushed, having neither the present struggle by keeping out of it, and
church nor pastor, were obliged to conceal thus to do the rivals a greater service than
themselves in remote quarters of the city by fighting for them " (ib. 14, p. 423). Soon
(Benoit, Greg, de Naz. p. 397). They applied afterwards the news of the establishment of
to Gregory to help them, and many bishops peace reached Constantinople, and was fol-
urged their plea. For a long time he was lowed by peace in the little church of the
unwilling to leave his retirement, but then Anastasia. Gregory, though ill, preached
came the conviction that he dared not refuse almost certainly on this occasion another
this summons. The date of his arrival at sermon on Peace (Oral, xxiii. Op. i. 425-4341,
Constantinople is not certain, but was pro- thankfully celebrating its return, and urging
bably before Easter, 379 (Tillem. Mem. ix. those present who were divided from them by
799). A prayer, in the form of a poem, heresy " to be at peace with them by accept-
indicates the spirit with which he entered upon ance of the true faith. It was the work of the
his new work (Carm. iii. Op. ii. 667), and sacred Trinity to give the faithful peace among
another poem shews what that work involved. themselves. The sacred Trinity would heal
New Rome " had passed through the death of also this wider breach." At the close of this
infidelity; there was left but one last breath sermon he promises to deal more fully with the
of life. He had come to this city to defend questions at issue between the followers of the
the faith. What they needed was solid Nicene faith and their opponents. This he did
teaching to deliver them from the spider-webs in the five theological discourses which soon
"
of subtleties in which they had been taken followed (Oral, xxvii.-xxxi. Op. i. 487-577 ;

(Carm. xi. 562-611, Op. ii. 705, 6). In a pri- vide infra). Other important discourses be-
vate house, where he himself was lodged by long to the same period, of which the most
relations, his work was begun. It was to him remarkable are a second on the Divinity of
" an Anastasia, the scene of the resurrection the Holy Spirit, preached at Whitsuntide
of the faith " (Oral. xlii. 26, Carm. xi. 1079, 381 (?) {Oral. xli. Op. ii. 731-744), and one on

Op. ii. 731) the house was too small for the Moderation in Discussions a frequent subject

;

multitudes that flocked to it, and a church with Gregory in which heresy is traced to its
was built in its place. His fame, as a theo- absence (Oral, xxxii. Op. ii. 579-601). He
logian, rests chiefly on the discourses delivered delivered also three (?) panegyrics, the subjects
at the Anastasia. His first work was to gather of which were Cyprian, whose name was held
the scattered members of the flock and in deserved honour in Constantinople (Oral.
instruct them in the practical duties of xxiv. Op. i. 437-450) ; Athanasius, whose
Christianity and the danger of empty theo- memory was specially dear to Gregory as the
logical discussions (Carm. xi. 1210-1231, Op. champion of Nicene orthodoxy, and who had
ii. 737-739). Again and again in the early died but a few years before (a. p. 373) (Oral.
discourses does he dwell on the truth that only xxi. Op. i. 386-411) ; and the Maccabees (?),
through personal holiness can a man grasp any whose heroism might well have been specially-
idea of the Holy One (Oral. xx. and Oral. xxii. intended for an example in the present struggle
Op. i. 376-384 and 597-603). Gregory was {Orat. XV. Op. i. 287-298). The last two,
exposed to the attacks of all parties. His especially that on Athanasius, are counted by
origin, person, clothing, were made objects all judges, from Jerome downwards, among
of ridicule. They would have welcomed a Gregory's noblest works (Script. Eccles. 117).
polished orator with external graces ; but his Jerome became about this time a disciple
manner of life had made him prematurely old, of Gregory and loved to tell how much he
and his gifts to the poor had made him in had learned from his teacher.
appearance and reality a poor man. One Another stranger who came to Constanti-
night, a mob, led by monks, broke into the nople professed himself a disciple of the now
place of meeting and profaned the altar and famous theologian. He bore the name of
sacred elements. Gregory escaped, but was Maximus, and represented himself as descend-
taken before the judges as a homicide ;
" but ed from a line of martyrs, and as having
He Who knew how to save from the lions was suffered much through his adherence to the
present to deliver him " [Carm. xi. 665-678, Nicene faith. Professing himself an ardent
Op. ii. 709). " He cared not that they admirer of Gregory's sermons, this man was

attacked him the stones were his delight ;
planning the overthrow of his teacher, and
he cared only for the flock who were thus hoped even to establish himself in the epis-
injured" (ib. 725 et seq.). His chief sorrow copal chair. He had an important ally in
6REG0RIUS NAZIANZENUS 6REG6RIUS NAZIANZENUS 4i:^

Peter, bp. of Alexandria, who had recognized to attempt to place Gregory by force in the
Gregory as practically bp. of the orthodox in episcopal chair. Yet there were traces of
Constantinople {Carm. xi. 838-931), but now jealousy, and false motives were freely attri-
joined in the plot against him. Gregory was buted to him. Always sensitive, he delivered
ill in bed, when one night Maximus with his in the presence of Theodosius a sermon
followers went to the church to be consecrated " concerning himself, and to those who said
by 5 suffragans sent from Alexandria for the that he wished to be bp. of Constantinople,
purpose. While they were preparing for the and concerning the favours which the people
ceremony, day began to dawn, and a mob, had shewn towards him " (Oral, xxxvi. Op.
excited by the sudden news, rushed in, drove i. 633-643). It is a forcible Apologia pro Vitd
them from the church, and compelled Maximus sua. " He would have been ashamed to seek
to flee from Constantinople. Retiring to Alex- that bishopric, bowed down as he was by old
andria, he demanded that Peter should find him age and physical weakness. They said that
another bishopric or relinquish his own. He he had sought another's bride (Constantino-
"
was silenced by the prefect and banished. ple) he had really refused his own (Sasima)
:

In connexion with the story of Maximus, {ih. vi. 63S, 639). The emperor and the
Gregory tells us that he one day uttered the court were present questions greater than
;

words, " My beloved children, keep intact this personal ones arose to Gregory's mind, and
Trinity which I, your most happy father, have the discourse became an eloquent appeal to
delivered to you, and preserve some memorial princes, sages, philosophers, professors, philo-
of my labours." One of the hearers saw the logists, orators, to weigh their responsibilities
hint, and people of all ages, conditions, and and fulfil their duties.
ranks vied with each other in cries of affection Another discourse preached before Theo-
for him and hatred for his foes {Carm. xi. 1057- dosius is the only one of Gregory's extant
1113, Op. ii. 729-731), and one cried, " If you discourses which is a homily in the narrower
go, you will banish the doctrine of the Trinity sense of a definite exposition and application
as well as yourself" [ib. iioo). At this of a passage of Scripture {Orat. xxxvii. Op.
Gregory promised to remain until the arrival i. 644-660). The text was Matt. xix. 1-12.
of some bishops who were expected at the Gregory first shews that " the reason why
council, but retired for a while to the country Christ moved from place to place was that He
to recruit his shattered health. might heal the more persons. For the salva-
On Nov. 24, 380, Theodosius made his tion of the world He had moved from heaven
formal entry into Constantinople. One of his to earth. This was the cause of His voluntary
first cares was to restore to the orthodox the humiliation, which men who understood it not
churches of which they had been deprived by had dwelt upon as contradicting His divinity,
the Arians. Gregory was summoned, and though divine names and attributes are
early on the morning of Nov. 26, in the pre- applied to Him. Christ answered some ques-
sence of an immense crowd, Theodosius and tions (Matt. xix. 3, 4) others He did not
;

Gregory entered the church of the Holy answer (Luke xx. 2, 4). The preacher would
Apostles. A thick fog enveloped the building, follow Christ's example " {ib. v. 648, 649).
but at the first accents of the chants the rays " Christ answered fully their question about
of the sun fell upon the vestments of the divorce. The preacher applying the teaching
priests and the swords of the soldiers, and of Christ protests against the injustice of the
brought to Gregory's mind the glory of the Roman law, which distinguished between the
Tabernacle of old. At the same time there adultery of the woman and that of the man.
arose a cry like thunder demanding that he Men made it, and therefore it was directed
should be bishop. " Silence !

silence " he
" This is the time to give thanks to
! against women {ib. vi. 649). Marriage for the
cried. firsttime is lawful, the second time an indul-
God. It will be time enough, hereafter, to gence more than the second, sinful
; ; but
settle other things." The service was con- virginity is a higher state {ib. v. iii.-x. 650-652).
tinued without further interruption. Only Husbands, wives, virgins, eunuchs, priests,
one sword was drawn, and that was put back laymen, all have their duties." He exhorts
unstained into its sheath (Carm. xi. 1325-1390). them to fulfil these, and, as in almost every
In no part of Gregory's life is his true excellence discourse, passes on to the duty of believing
of character more clearly seen than here to ; in the doctrine of the Trinity.
his spirit of moderation and forgiveness is Three other important discourses of Gregory,
it to be attributed that this great religious which belong also to the ministry at Constan-
revolution was effected without shedding one tinople, can only be mentioned, (i) On the
drop of blood. He tells one incident which Nativity [Dec. 25, 380 ?] {Orat. xxxviii. Op. i.
reveals his spirit towards his foes. While he 661-675 (2) On the Epiphany [Jan. 6, 381 ?]
;

was ill in bed an assassin who had attempted {Orat. xxxiv. ib. 676-691) (3) On Holy Bap-
;

his life entered his room, and, stung by con- tism {Orat. xl. ib. 691-729).
science, fell weeping and speechless at his feet. Theodosius had long intended to summon a
Gregory said to him, " May God preserve general council, and in May, a.d. 381, thesynod
you ! It is nothing wonderful that I whom of the 150 bishops who formed the second
He hath saved should be merciful to you. oecumenical council was held in the capital
Your bold deed has made you mine. Take of the East. Socrates tells us that the object
care to walk, henceforth, worthy of God and of the council was to confirm the Nicene
of me." Gregory adds that this deed softened faith and to appoint a bishop for Constanti-
the feeling of the citizens towards him. nople {Hist. Eccl. V. 8 cf. Soz. vii. 7
;
Theod. ;

Not long after the entry into the metro- V. 7 ; Mansi, Collect. Condi, iii. 523)- No
political church
— — perhaps the very next day Western bishop is mentioned as present, and
the enthusiasm of the multitude led them the attempt to shew that Damasus of Rome

414 GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS


was either consulted or represented is futile ;
authority, as another general council had
but 36 bishops who were followers of Mace- elected him bp. of Constantinople ; but it
donius were present, and every effort was could not be expected that this plea would be
made to induce them to accept the Nicene accepted by bishops who were not a party to
faith. Meletius, the venerable bp. of Antioch, that act, nor was Gregory himself justified in
was at first president. The consecration of speaking of the Nicene canons as obsolete.
Maximus was at once pronounced void. The Gregory exhorted the council to think of
wish of Theodosius that Gregory should be higher things and mutual harmony. " He
chosen for the vacant see was well known ;
would be another Jonah to pacify the angry
and the only bishop who opposed it was waves. Gladly would he find retirement and
Gregory himself. He was by force placed in rest. He had but one anxiety, and that was
the episcopal chair. But he had this hope for his beloved doctrine of the Trinity (ib.
alas ! a vain one— that, " as position gives 1828-1855). He left the synod, glad at the
influence, he should be able, like a choragus thought of rest from his labours ; sorrowful
who leads two choirs, to produce harmony as one who is robbed of his children." The
between opposing parties" [Carm. xi. 1525- synod received his resignation with satisfac-
1545.. O^- ii- 755)- Meletius dying, the new tion, as removing a chief ground of dissension,
archbishop naturally succeeded him as pre- and probably of jealousy also (ib. 1869 ;

sident of the council, but who should succeed Carm. xii. 145-148, Op. ii. 787). Gregory
him as bp. of Antioch ? It is said that the went from the assembly to the emperor, who
two bishops, Meletius and Paulinus, had unwillingly consented. Gregory's only remain-
agreed that the survivor should be the sole ing care was to reconcile those who had been
bishop, and that to this agreement the chief opposed to him and to bid farewell to his "
clergy and laity of both parties were sworn. friends. He delivered a public statement of
Meletius himself expressed an earnest wish for his position and a public farewell to the council
it from his death-bed, but a strong party, both and his church towards the end of June, 381
within and without the council, was soon (Oral. xlii. Op. i. 748-768), before the synod
organized against it. Gregory has given us, and in the presence of a congregation which
in the poem de Vita sua, a resume of his own filled every corner of the church, and among
speech on the question (Carm. xi. 1591-1679, whom no eye was dry. " Was there needed
Op. ii. 759-763). " Now God had given the proof of his right to the bishopric ? He would
means of peace, let them confirm Paulinus in render his accounts. Let his work answer.
the episcopal office, and when the two should He found them a rude flock, without a pastor,
pass away, let them elect a new bishop. . For
. . scattered, persecuted, robbed. Let them look
himself, he sought their permission to resign round and see the wreath which had been
the office which they had conferred upon him,
and he would gladly retire to some desert far

woven priests, deacons, readers, holy men
and women. That wreath he had helped to
away from evil men." He could scarcely have weave. Was it a great thing to have estab-
expected that this address would be received lished sound doctrine in a city which was the
with favour, for the Meletian party was over- centre of the world ? In that, too, he had
poweringly strong in the synod, and Paulinus done his part. Had he ever sought to promote
had not been invited ; but he was not pre- his own interests ? He could appeal like
pared for the storm which followed. " There another Samuel. No ;he had lived for God
arose a cry like that of a number of jackdaws, and the church, and kept the vows of his
and the younger members attacked him like priesthood. All this he had done through the
a swarm of wasps" [ib. 1680-1690). He left Holy Trinity and by the help of the Spirit.
the synod never to return to it. For a while He would present to the synod his church as
illness was opportunely (/caXtDs) the reason of the most precious oft'ering. The reward he
his absence (ih. 1745), iDut the council pro- asked was that they would appoint some one
ceeded to name Flavian as successor of with pure hands and prudent tongue to watch
Meletius ; and Gregory, finding that his over it ; and that to the white hairs and
opinion had little weight, withdrew altogether worn-out frame of an old man, who could
and left the official residence, which was close hardly then preach to them, they would allow
to the church of the Holy Apostles (Carm. xi. the longed-for rest. Let them learn to prove
1778, Op. ii. 769). This led to earnest en- —
these his last words bishops to see the evil
treaties from the people that he would not of the contentions which were among them ;

desert his flock (ib. 1785-1795). Moved for a people to disregard externals and love priests
while by these prayers, he yet persisted in his rather than orators, men who cared for their
determination, which was strengthened by the souls rather than rich men." He then pro-
arrival of bishops from Egypt and Macedonia. nounced his lengthened farewell " to the
The East and the West were now opposed to beloved Anastasia, to the large temple, to the
each other, and " prepared for the battle like churches throughout the city, to the apostles
wild boars, sharpening their terrible tusks " who inhabited the temple, to the episcopal
(ib. 1804). The new members of the svnod throne, to the clergy of all degrees, to all who
did not object to Gregory personally ; but his helped at the holy table, to the choruses of
election was probably in itself obnoxious as Nazareans, to the virgins, wives, widows,
an act of Meletius. It was clearly opposed, orphans, poor ; to the hospitable houses, to
they urged, to the 15th canon of the Nicene the crowds of hearers to prince and palace
;

council, which forbad any bishop, presbyter, and their inhabitants to the Christ-loving
;

or deacon to pass from one city to another. city, to Eastern and Western lands; above
By that canon he ought to be sent back to all, to angels, protectors of the church and of
Sasima. Gregory's party urged that he was himself to the Holy Trinity, his only
;
thought
released from that obligation by an equal and treasure." With this pathetic climax,
GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS 415

unsurpassed elsewhere even by Gregory him- 1-12, Op. 913-915)- He found


temporary a
self, he concluded his last discourse in Con- resting-place at a tomb consecrated to martyrs
stantinople. He left the city and retired to at Carbala, a place of which nothing is known,
Nazianzus. Here he received a letter from and which the Bollandists suppose (Mai. ii.
Philagrius, an old friend of Caesarius and 424 f) to be another name for the plot at
himself, animadverting upon his retirement. Arianzus. He was driven thence by a rela-
His answer breathes the same spirit as the tive named Valentinian,who settled near with
poem de Vita sua and the farewell sermon. the female members of his family, as from
" He was tired of fighting against envy and another Paradise by another Eve. OtVapxtais
against venerable bishops, who destroyed the 5t) yvvaLKWv ovruiS inrox^pv<^o/nev. uxnrep
peace and put their personal squabbles before fX^Sfaiois ewidpofxaii {Ep. cciii. Op. ii. 169).
questions of faith" (Ep. Ixxxvii. Op. ii. 76). The poems and letters of this period speak of
Among the letters belonging to this period, constant illness and suffering, with but short
two addressed to Nectarius, who was chosen intervals of relief. A
frame never strong had
to succeed Gregory at ConstantinoplCj deserve given way under the severe asceticism of the
special note, as shewing that he cherished for earlier and the burden of the later life. " I
him and the church nothing but the most suffer," he says in one of the letters, " and
entire goodwill {Epp. Ixxxviii. and xci. Op. am content, not because I suffer, but because
ii. 77, 78). Gregory's difficulties were not Iam for others an example of patience. If I
yet at an end. On his return to Nazianzus he have no means to overcome any pain, I gain
found that church in confusion, chiefly through from it at least the power to bear it, and to be
the teaching of the ApoUinarians [Carm. xxxi. thankful as well in sorrowful circumstances as
Op. ii. 870-877). He tried to find a bishop in joyous for I am convinced that, although
;

who would stem the evil, but was thwarted it seems to us the contrary, there is in the eyes
by the presbyters and by the desertion of [
of the Sovereign Reason nothing opposed to
seven bishops who had promised to support reason, in all which happens to us " {Ep.
him. His candidate had been hitherto xxxvi. Op. ii. 32). Besides physical suffer-
engaged in secular affairs, but he thought him ings he had to bear intense spiritual agony,
the most promising. He seems to have suc- which at times took from him all hope either
ceeded in naming another as bishop, and then in this world or the next. In the thick of the
to have retired to Arianzus. But very shortly j
spiritual combat he, like other great souls,
he was again urged to take the governance of learnt the lessons he was to teach to the world.
the church at Nazianzus and check the His death must be assigned to about the nth
rapidly spreading Apollinarianism, and, in year of Theodosius, i.e. a.d. 389 or 390.
spite of his own strong disinclination, he Gregory's extant works are contained in two
agreed to do so. During this second admin- fol. vols, of the Benedictine edition. Vol. i.
istration the prefect Olympius threatened to consists of 45 sermons, of which some have
destroy the city in consequence of a seditious been noticed in this article. Vol. ii. includes
attack, and it was saved only by a pacific —
243 letters theological, pastoral, political,
letter from the bishop {Ep. cxli. Op. ii. 118- domestic the will of Gregory, taken from the
;

120). Other letters of the same kind shew archives of the church of Nazianzus, and the
Gregory as the father of the city, watching poems arranged in two books. The dogmatic
over all its interests with loving care. poems are 38 in number. No. 10(74 iambics)
But he felt that his constant illness unfitted is on the Incarnation, against ApoUinaris.
him for his duties, and we find him writing to No. II (16 hexameters and pentameters) is
the archbp. of Tyana earnestly beseeching him also on the Incarnation. Nos. 12-29 ^re
to take steps to appoint another bishop. " If mnemonic verses on the facts of Holy Scrip-
this letter did not affect its purpose, he would ture, apparently meant for school use. Nos.
publicly proclaim the bishopric vacant rather 29-38 are prayers or hymns addressed to God.
than that the church should longer suffer from The moral poems are 40 in number. No.
his own infirmity" {Ep. clii. Op. ii. 128). I (732 hexameters) is a eulogy of virginity.
Eulalius, Gregory's colleague and relation, Nos. 2-7 in various metres, deal with kindred
and the man of his choice, was elected in his subjects, exhortations and counsels to virgins
stead. Gregory's satisfaction is expressed in and monks, and the superiority of the single
a letter to Gregory of Nyssa {Ep. clxxxii. Op. life. Nos. 8- 1 1 are on the secular and religious
ii. 149). Gregory withdrew to Arianzus, and life, and exhortations to virtue Nos. 12 and 13
;

spent in retirement the six remaining years of on the frailty of the human nature. No. 14
life. To this period belong certainly a large is a meditation on human nature in 132 hexa-
number of poems and letters ;and probably meters and pentameters. It ranks with No. i
two discourses, one on the Festival of St. among the most beautiful of Gregory's poems.
Mamas, which was kept with special honour The remainder of the poems in this section are
around Nazianzus on the first Sun. after Easter of the outer
on such subjects as the baseness
{Kaivri KvpiaKT)), and one on the Holv Pass- man
the blessedness of the Christian life
; ;

over {Orat. xliv. and xlv. Op. i. 834-868). the sin of frequent oaths and of anger the ;

Gregory at first retired to the little plot at loss of dear friends the misery of false friends.
;

Arianzus which he had retained when all his Four are satires against a bad-mannered
other property was given to the poor. Here nobleman (26 and 27) misers (28) feminine
; ;

a shady walk with a fountain was his favourite luxury (29). There are 99 poems re-
resort (Carw. xliv. 1-24, Op. ii. 915-917). But lating to his own life. One of them (No. 11,
even this peaceful spot was denied him, and de Vita sua) is an autobiography extending
1

he was "driven forth without city, throne, or to 1,949 lines, to which another (No. 12, de
|

children, but always full of cares for them, Seipso et de Episcopis) adds 836 lines more,
as a wanderer upon the earth " (Carm. xliii. Among the historical poems is an epistle to
I
4i6 GREGORiUS NAZlANZENUS GREGORIUS NAZlANZENUS
Nemesius, an eminent public man, shewing than to the modern sermon. It has been
him the errors of paganism, and urging him to charged against the sermons of Gregory that
accept Christianity. These poetic epistles are they are not expositions of Scripture. As
of considerable length, and shew the varied compared with the homilies of Chrysostom,
interests and practical wisdom of the writer. for example, they certainly are not (except
There are 129 epitaphs and 94 epigrams, one Oral, xxxvii. Op. i. 644-660)
: the ;

most of which are short poems, with little in nature of the case made it impossible that they
them of the modern epigram, though some should be. But the margin of every page
shew {e.g. 10-14, E'"' AyairTiTovs) that the pen abounds with references to Scripture, and no
of Gregory could, when occasion required, be reader can fail to see with Bossuet that
pointed with adamant. No less than 64 (31- " Gregory's whole discourse is nothing but a
94), belonging probably to the writer's youth, judicious weaving of Scripture, and that he
are upon the spoilers of tombs. If the state- manifests everywhere a profound acquaint-
ment of J erome and Suidas, that Gregory wrote ance with it " (Defense de la tradition, etc.,
30,000 verses, is to be understood literally, iv. 2 Benoit, p. 723). ;

more than a third of them are now unknown. Great as was the position of Gregory as a
In forming an estimate of Gregory's writer, he left his chief mark upon history as
literary position, we have to consider (i) his a theologian. He alone beyond the apostolic
poems, (2) his letters, and {3) his orations. circle has been thought worthy to bear the
Of each kind of writing there are abundant name " Theologus " which had been appro-
materials to form a judgment, (i) Two priated to St. John. Ullmann (Gregorius,
criticisms of the poems from very different etc. ss. 209-352), following Clemencet (Op. i.
standpoints may help us to arrive at the true xlix.-lxxviii.), has arranged under their
mean. To Dr. UUmann (Gregorius, ss. 200- separate headings his views on the articles of
202) they are " inferior to the letters, the faith. Within our present limits we can only
product of old age, whereas the true vein of refer to them as contained in the five famous
poetry must have shewn itself in earlier life theological discourses at Constantinople ( Oral.
;

cramped by their subject-matters, which did xxvii.-xxxi. Op. i. 487-579).


not admit of originality prosaic thoughts;
(i) The first, Kara Vtvvomnvuiv, urges that
wrapped in poetic forms involved and " to discourse about God is a task of the
;

diffusive " though he admits that some of the greatest difficulty, not fitted for all times or
;

short pieces are poetry of a high order, and all persons, nor to be undertaken in the pre-
that the didactic aim of Gregory is to be taken sence of all persons. The teacher of theology
. . .

into account. " Still they could never be ought first to practise virtue. There is
more than a poor substitute for the older abundant scope for work to refute the older
poetry of Greece." Villemain considers the teaching of the pagan philosophers, or to
poems the finest of all Gregory's works. He discuss simpler questions of science and theo-
instances one especially (de Humand naturd), logy but as to the nature of God our words
;

" the severe charm of which seems to have should be few, for we can know but little in
anticipated the finest inspirations of our this life."
melancholy age, while it preserves the impress (2) Uepl Oeo\oyiai. Gregory reasserts here
of a faith still fresh and honest, even in its his favourite position, that " it is the pure
trouble.. . His funeral eulogies are hymns
. mind only that can know God
;
The
his invectives against Julian have something theologian beholds part of God, but the divine
of the malediction of the prophets. He has nature he can neither express in words nor
been called the Theologian of the East.' He comprehend in thought. The higher intelli-
'

ought to have been called rather the Poet of gence of angels even cannot know Him as He
'

Eastern Christendom " (Tableau de V eloquence is. That there is a creating and preserving
'

chretienne aw 4"« sjecZe, p. 133). (2) Gregory's cause, we can know, as the sound of an instru-
extant letters, though upon very various sub- ment bears witness to its maker and player ;

jects, and often written under the pressure of that God is, we know, but what He is, and of
immediate necessity, are almost invariably what nature He is, and where He is, and where
finished compositions. (3) A higher place has He was before the foundation of the world, we
been claimed in this article for Gregory's ora- cannot know. The Infinite cannot be defined.
tions than for his poems. He is now held to be We
can only predicate negative attributes, for
greater than Basil, or even Chrysostom, and the nature of the divine essence is beyond all
to have combined " the invincible logic of human conception."
Bourdaloue the unction, colour, and harmony
; (3) llepi TioO. The two previous discourses
of Massillon the flexibility, poetic grace, and were introductory.
; He now passes to the next
vivacity of Fenelon the force, grandeur, and subject.
;
" The three earliest opinions con-
sublimity of Bossuet. . The Eagle of cerning God were anarchia, polyarchia, and
. .

Meaux has been especially inspired by him monarchia. The two former could not stand,
in his funeral orations the Swan of Cambrai as leading to confusion rather than the order
;

has followed him in his treatise on The of the universe. We


hold that there is a
Existence of God" (Benoit, p. 721). He was monarchia, but that God is not limited to one
an orator by training and profession. For person. If unity is divided, it becomes
this he studied at Caesarea, Alexandria, and plurality. But if there is equal dignity of
Athens, and was the acknowledged chief in the nature, and agreement of will, and identity of
schools of the rhetoricians. The oratory of the movement, and convergence to unity of those
Christian pulpit was the creation of Gregory things which are of unity (and this cannot be
and Basil. It was based on the ancient the case in created things), there may be dis-
models, and was akin, therefore, to the tinction in number without by any means
speeches of Demosthenes and Cicero, rather involving distinction in essence and nature.
GREGORIUS NAZIANZENUS GREGORIUS NYSSENUS 417
Unity, therefore (/ioi'dy), from the beginning Gregorius (15)Nyssenus, bp. of Nyssa in
going forth to duality (ei'j SvdSa), constituted a Cappadocia (372-395), younger brother of
Trinity (/j-expi. rpiddos). Human words fail to Basil the Great, and a leading theologian of
express the generation and procession, and it the Eastern church. He and his brother and
is better to keep to scriptural terms ; but the their common friend Gregory Nazianzen were
writer has in his thoughts an overflowing of the chief champions of the orthodox Nicene
goodness, and the Platonic simile of an over- faith in the struggle against Arianism and
flowing cup applied to first and second causes. ApoUinarianism, and by their discreet zeal,
The generation and procession are eternal, and independency of spirit, and moderation of
all questions as to time are inapplicable." temper, contributed chiefly to its victory in
Gregory then proceeds to state and answer the the East. He was one of ten children of Basil,
common objections of his adversaries. an advocate and rhetorician of eminence, and
(4) Uepl Tiou. Another discourse on the his wife Emmelia (Greg. Nys. de Vit. S. Macr.,
same subject. Gregory has already answered 0pp. ed. Morel, t. ii. pp. 182-186). We may
the objection, that some passages of Scripture place Gregory's birth c. 335 or 336, probably
speak of the Son as human. He here exhaus- at Caesarea. He did not share his eldest
tively examines, under ten objections, the brother's advantage of a university training,
scriptural language applied to our Lord, and but was probably brought up in the schools of
then passes to an exposition of the names (a) his native city. That no very special pains
common to the Deity, (6) peculiar to the Son, had been devoted to his education we may
(c) peculiar to the Son as man. gather from the words of his sister Macidora
(5) Iltpi rov Aylov
' weiffxaros. Gregory on her deathbed, in which she ascribed the
commences this oration by referring to the high reputation he had gained to the prayers
difficulties arising because many who admitted of his parents, since " he had little or no
the divinity of the Son regarded that of the assistance towards it from home " (ib. iii. 192).
Holy Ghost as a new doctrine not found in A feeble constitution and natural shyness
Holy Scripture. He expresses, in the strong- disposed him to a literary retirement. His
est terms, his own belief in the divinity of considerable intellectual powers had been im-
the Third Person. "The Holy Spirit is holi- proved by diligent private study ; but he
ness. Had the Spirit been wanting to the shrank from a public career, and appears after
divine Trinity, the Father and the Son would his father's death to have lived upon his in-
have been imperfect." The most eminent heritance, without any profession. That his
pagan philosophers had had a glimpse of the religious instincts did not develop early
truth, for they spoke of the " Mind of the appears from his account of his reluctant at-
Universe," the " Mind without," etc. tendance at the ceremonial held by his mother
No conception of the subtlety of thought or Emmelia in honour of the " Forty Martyrs."
beauty of expression in these discourses of A terrifying dream, which seemed to reproach
Gregory can be given in an outline. Critics him with neglect, led him to become a
have rivalled each other in their praise, and
''
lector " and as such read the Bible lections
many theologians have found in them their in the congregation (Greg. Naz. Ep. 43, t. i.
own best thoughts. A critic who cannot be p. 804). He would seem, however, to have
accused of partiality towards Gregory has soon deserted this vocation for that of a
given perhaps the truest estimate of them. professor of rhetoric. This backsliding caused
" A substance of thought, the concentration of great pain to his friends and gave occasion to
all that is spread through the writings of the enemies of religion to suspect his motives
Hilary, Basil, and Athanasius ; a flow of and bring unfounded accusations against him.
softened eloquence which does not halt or lose Gregory Nazianzen, whose affection for him
itself for a moment ; an argument nervous was warm and sincere, strongly remonstrated
without dryness on the one hand, and without with him, expressing the grief felt by himself
useless ornament on the other, gives these five and others at his falling away from his first
discourses a place to themselves among the love. The date of this temporary desertion
monuments of this fine genius, who was not must be placed either before 361 or after 363,
always in the same degree free from grandilo- about the same time as his marriage. His
quence and affectation. In a few pages and wife was named Theosebeia, and her character
in a few hours Gregory has summed up and answered to her name. She died some time
closed the controversy of a whole century." after Gregory had become a bishop, and,
De Broglie, L'Eglise et Vempire, v. 385 according to Tillemont, subsequently to the
;

Benoit, Gregoire, etc. 435, 436. council of Constantinople, a.d. 381. Ex-
Little is needed for the study of Gregory'spressions in Gregory Nazianzen's letter would
life and works beyond the admirable Bene- lead us to believe that both himself and his
friend were then somewhat advanced in life
dictine ed. referred' to above (Migne, Patr. Gk. ;

xxxv.-xxxviii.), and the Lives by Ullmann and from Theosebeia being styled Gregory
(Greg, von Naz. der Theologe, 2. Aufl., Gotha, Nyssen's " sister " we may gather that they
1867 pt. i. of earlier ed. trans, by Cox, Oxf.
; had ceased to cohabit, probably on his becom-
1855) and Benoit (St. Greg, de Naz., Paris, ing a bishop (Greg. Naz. Ep. 95, t. i. p. 846 ;
1876). For a well-known comparison of Niceph. H. E. xi. 19).
Gregory and Basil see Newman's Church Gregory soon abandoned his profession of
of the Fathers, pp. 116-145, 55i- Gregory's a teacher of rhetoric. The urgent remon-
Five Theol. Orations have been ed. by A. J. strances of his friend Gregory Nazianzen would
Mason (Camb. Univ. Press, 1899). See also have an earnest supporter in his elder sister,
Duchesne, Histoire de I'Egl. vol. ii. ch. xii. the holy recluse Macrina, who doubtless used
Some of his works are trans, into Eng. in the the same powerful arguments which had in-
Post-Nic. Fathers. [h.w.w.] duced Basil to give up all prospect of worldly
27
418 GREGORIUS NYSSENUS GREGORIUS NYSSENUS
fame for the service of Christ. Probably also Basil, a synod was summoned at Ancyra at
the profession he had undertaken proved the close of 375, to examine some alleged
increasingly distasteful to one of Gregory's canonical irregularities in Gregory's consecra-
sensitive and retiring disposition, and he may tion, and to investigate a frivolous charge
have been further discouraged by the small brought against him by a certain Philocharis
results of his exertions to inspire a literary of having made away with church funds left
taste among youths who, as he complains in by his predecessor. A band of soldiers was
letters to his brother Basil's tutor Libanius, sent to arrest Gregory and conduct him to the
written while practising as a rhetorician (Greg. place of hearing. A chill on his journey
Nys. Ep. 13, 14), were much more ready to brought on a pleuritic seizure and aggravated
enter the army than to follow rhetorical a painful malady to which he was subject.
studies. He retired to a monastery in Pontus, His entreaties to be allowed to halt for medical
almost certainly that on the river Iris presided treatment were disregarded, but he managed
over by his brother Basil, and in close vicinity to elude the vigilance of the soldiers and to
to Annesi, where was the female convent of escape to some place of concealment where his
which his sister Macrina was the superior. In maladies could be cared for. Basil collected
this congenial retreat he passed several years, a synod of orthodox Cappadocian bishops, in
devoting himself to the study of the Scriptures whose name he addressed a dignified but
and the works of Christian commentators. courteous letter to Demosthenes, apologizing
Among these it is certain that Origen had a for his brother's non-appearance at Ancyra,
high place, the influence of that writer being and stating that the charge of embezzlement
evident in Gregory's own theological works. could be shewn to be false by the books of
At Pontus, c. 371, he composed his work de the treasurers of the church while, if any ;

Virginitate, in which, while extolling virginity canonical defect in his ordination could be"'
as the highest perfection of Christian life, he proved, the ordainers were those who should
laments that he had separated himself from be called to account, an account which they
that state [de Virg. lib. iii. t. iii. pp. 116 seq.). were ready to render (ib. 225 [385]). Basil
Towards the close of his residence in Pontus, wrote also to a man of distinction named
A.D. 371, circumstances occurred displaying Aburgius, begging him to use his influence to
Gregory's want of judgment in a striking save Gregory from the misery of being dragged
manner. An estrangement had arisen be- into court and implicated in judicial business
tween Basil and his aged uncle, the bp. from which his peaceful disposition shrank
Gregory, whom the family deservedly re- (ib. 33 [358]). Another synod was summoned
garded as their second father. The younger at Nyssa by Demosthenes a.d. 376, through
Gregory took on himself the office of mediator. the instrumentality of Eustathius of Sebaste.
Straightforward methods having failed, he Still Gregory refused to appear. He was
adopted crooked ones, and forged letters to his pronounced contumacious and deposed by the
brother in their uncle's name desiring recon- assembled bishops, of whom Anysius and
ciliation. The letters were indignantly re- Ecdicius of Parnasse were the leaders, and they
pudiated by the justly offended bishop, and consecrated a successor, whom Basil spoke ot
reconciliation became increasingly hopeless. with scorn as a miserable slave who could be
Basil addressed a letter to his brother, which bought for a few oboli (ib. 237 [264], 239 [10]).
is a model of dignified rebuke. He first Gregory's deposition was followed by his
ridicules him with his simplicity, unworthy of banishment by Valens (Greg. Nys. de Vit.
a Christian, reproaches him for endeavouring Macr. t. ii. p. 192). These accumulated
to serve the cause of truth by deception, and troubles utterly crushed his gentle spirit. In
charges him with unbrotherly conduct his letters he bewails the cruel necessity which
in
adding affliction to one already pressed out of had compelled him to desert his spiritual
measure (Basil. Ep. 58 [44]). children, and driven him from his home and
In 372 (the year Gregory Nazianzen was friends to dwell among malicious enemies
consecrated to the see of Sasima) Gregory was who scrutinized every look and gesture, nay
forced by his brother Basil to accept reluctantly his very dress, and made them grounds of
theseeof Nyssa,an obscuretown of Cappadocia accusation. He dwells with tender recollec-
Prima, about ten miles from the capital, tion on the home he had lost his fireside, his—
Caesarea. Their common friend, Eusebius of table, his pantry, his bed, his bench, his
Samosata, wrote to Basil to remonstrate on sackcloth— and contrasts it with the stifling
his burying so distinguished a man in so hole in which he was forced to dwell, of which
unworthy a see. Basil replied that his the only furniture was straitness, darkness,
brother's merits made him worthy to govern and coid. His only consolation is in the
the whole church gathered into one, but he assurance that his brethren would remember
desired that the see should be made famous by him in their prayers (Greg. Nys. Epp. 18, 22).
its bishop, not the bishop by his see (ib. 98 His letters to Gregory Nazianzen have unfor-
[259]). These words have proved prophetic. tunately perished, but his deep despondency
Gregory's episcopate fell in troublous times. is shewn by the replies. After his expulsion
Valens, a zealous Arian, being on the throne, from his see his namesake wrote that, though
lost no opportunity of forwarding his own denied his wish to accompany him in his
tenets and vexing the orthodox. The miser- banishment, he went with him in spirit, and
able Demosthenes fBASiLius] had been re- trusted in God that the storm would soon blow
cently appointed vicar of Pontus to do all in over, and he get the better of all his enemies,
his power to crush the adherents of the Nicene as a recompense for his strict orthodoxy
faith. After petty acts of persecution, in (Greg. Naz. Ep. 142, t. i. p. 866). Driven from
which the semi-Arian prelates joined with place to place to avoid his enemies, he had
high satisfaction, as a means of retaliating on compared himself to a stick carried aimlessly
; —

GREGORIUS NVSSENUS 6REG0RIUS NVSSENUS 41 d

hither and thither on the surface of a stream ;


by death, elected Gregory to the vacant see.
his friend replies that his movements were This, in some unexplained way, caused
rather like those of the sun, which brings life troubles calling for the intervention of the
to all things, or of the planets, whose apparent These difficulties being settled, he
military.
irregularities are subject to a fixed law{t6. 34 on a long and toilsome journey, in
set out
[32], p- 798). Out of heart at the apparent fulfilment of a commission from the council
triumph of Arianism, Gregory bids him be of of Antioch " to visit and reform the church
good cheer, for the enemies of the truth were of Arabia " (t. iii. p. 653) i.e. of Babylon.
like serpents, creeping from their holes in the He found the state of the church there even
sunshine of imperial favour, who, however worse than had been represented. The people
alarming their hissing, would be driven back had grown hardened in heresy, and were as
into the earth by time and truth. All would brutish and barbarous in their lives as in their
come right if they left all to God {ib. 35 [33], tongue. From his despairing tone we judge
p. 799). This trust in God proved well that the mission met with but little success.
founded. On the death of Valens in 378 the At its termination, being near the Holy Land,
youthful Gratian recalled the banished bishops, he visited the spots consecrated by the life
and, to the joy of the faithful, Gregory was and death of Christ. The emperor put a
restored to Nyssa. In one of his letters he public chariot at his disposal, which served
describes with graphic power his return. The him and his retinue " both for a monastery and
latter half of his journey was a triumphal a church," fasting, psalmody, and the hours
progress, the inhabitants pouring out to meet of prayer being regularly observed all through
him, and escorting him with acclamations and the journey (t. iii. p. 658). He visited
tears of joy (Greg. Nys. Ep. 3, Zacagni Bethlehem, Golgotha, the Mount of Olives, and
No. 6, Migne). On J an. i, 379, Basil, whom he the Anastasis. But the result of this pil-
loved as a brother and revered as a spiritual grimage was disappointment. His faith
father, died. Gregory certainly attended his received no confirmation, and his religious
funeral, delivering his funeral oration, to sense was scandalized by the gross immorality
which we are indebted for many particulars prevailing in the Holy City, which he describes
of Basil's life. In common with Gregory's as a sink of all iniquity. The church there
compositions generally, it offends by the was in an almost equally unsatisfactory state.
extravagance of its language and turgid Cyril, after his repeated depositions by Arian
oratory (Greg. Nys. in Laud. Patr. Bus. t. iii. influence, had finally returned, but had failed
pp. 479 seq.). Gregory Nazianzen, who was to heal the dissensions of the Christians or
prevented from being present by illness, wrote bring them back to unity of faith. Gregory's
a consolatory letter, praising his namesake efforts were equally ineffectual, and he re-
very highly, and saying that his chief comfort turned to Cappadocia depressed and saddened.
now was to see all Basil's virtues reflected in In two letters, one to three ladies resident at
him, as in a mirror (Greg. Naz. Ep. 37 [35], Jerusalem, Eustathia, Ambrosia, and Basilissa
p. 799). One sorrow followed close upon (t. iii. pp. 659 seq.), the other the celebrated
another in Gregory's life. The confusion in one de Euntibus Hierosolyma, he declares his
the churches after the long Arian supremacy conviction not of the uselessness only but of
entailed severe labours and anxieties upon the evil of pilgrimages. " He urges . the
. .

him for the defence of the truth and the dangers of robbery and violence in the Holy
reformation of the erring {de Vit. Macr. t. ii. Landitself, of themoralstate of which he draws
p. 192). In Sept. 379 he took part in the a fearful picture. He asserts the religious superi-
council held at Antioch for the double purpose ority of Cappadocia, which had more churches
of healing the Antiochene schism (which it than any part of the world, and inquires in plain
failed to effect) and of taking measures for terms whether a man will believe the virgin
securing the church's victory over the lately birth of Christ the more by seeing Bethlehem,
dominant Arianism (Labbe, Concil. ii. 910 or His resurrection by visiting His tcmb, or
;

Baluz. Nov. Concil. Coll. p. 78). On his way His ascension by standing on the Mount of
back to his diocese, Gregory visited the Olives " (Milman, Hist, of Christianity, bk. iii.
monastery at Annesi, over which his sister c. II, vol. iii. p. 192, note). There is no
Macrina presided. He found her dying, and sufficient reason for questioning the genuine-
she expired the next evening. A full account ness of this letter. We next hear of Gregory
of her last hours, with a detailed biography, at the second general council, that of Con-
is given by him in a letter to the monk Olym- stantinople, A.D. 381 (Labbe, Concil. ii. 955),
pius (de Vit. S. Macrinae Virg. t. ii. pp. 177 accompanied by his deacon Evagrius. There
seq.). In his treatise de Anima et Resurrec- he held a principal place as a recognized
tione (entitled, in honour of his sister, to. theological leader, r-^s iKK\T<rlas rd Kotvbv
Mavp/i'ia) we have another account of her ipeiiT/j.a. as his friend Gregory Nazianzen had
deathbed, in which he puts long speeches into at an earlier period termed him. That he was
her mouth, as part of a dialogue held with the author of the clauses then added to the
him on the proofs of the immortality of the Nicene symbol is an unverified assertion of
soul and the resurrection of the body, the Nicephorus Callistus {H. E. xii. 13). It was
object of which was to mitigate his grief for probably on this occasion that he read to
Basil's death (t. iii. pp. 181 seq.). [Macrina Gregory Nazianzen and to Jerome his work
THE Younger.] After celebrating his sister's against Eunomius, or the more important
funeral, Gregory continued his journey to his parts of it (Hieron. de Vir. III. c. 128). Greg-
diocese, where an unbroken series of calamities ory Nazianzen having been reluctantly ctm-
awaited him. The Galatians had been sowing pelled to ascend the episcopal throne of
their heresies. The people at Ibora on the Constantinople, Gregory Nyssen delivered an
borders of Pontus, having lost their bishop inaugural oration now lost, and, soon after,
;

420 GREGORlUS NYSSENUS 6RE60RIUS NVSSENUS


a funeral oration on the venerable Meletius of system of interpretation being almost entirely
Antioch, which has been preserved (Socr. H. E. allegorical. To this class belong his works on
iv. 26 Oratio in funere Magni Meletii, t. iii.
;
the Creation, written chiefly to supplement and
pp. 587 seq.). Before the close of the council defend the great work of his brother Basil on
the emperor Theodosius issued a decree from the Hexaemeron. These include (i) irfpl rrjs
Heraclea, July 30, 381, containing the names e^ayj/jLepov, dedicated to his youngest brother
of the bishops who were to be regarded as Peter, bp. of Sebaste. It is also called
centres of orthodox communion in their Apologeticus, as it contains a defence of the
respective districts. Among these Gregory actions of Moses and of some points in Basil's
Nyssen appears, together with his metro- work, (ii) A treatise on the creation of man,
politan Helladius of Caesarea and Otreius of written as a supplement to Basil's treatise
Melitene, for the diocese of Pontus (Cod. (vol. i. p. 45 Socr. H. E. iv. 26), the funda-
;

Theod. 1. iii. de Fide Catholica, t. vi. p. 9 mental idea of which is the unity of the human
;

Socr. H. E. V. 8). Gregory, however, was not race^that humanity before God is to be
made for the delicate and difficult business of considered as one man. It is called by Suidas
restoring the unity of the faith. He was more T£vxos OavfxdffiOf. (iii) Also two homilies
a student than a man of action. His sim- on the same subject (Gen. i. 26), frequently
plicity was easily imposed upon. Open to appended to Basil's Hexaemeron, and erro-
flattery, he became the dupe of designing men. neously assigned to him by Combefis and
His colleague Helladius was in every way his others. There is also a discourse (t. ii. pp.
inferior, and if Gregory took as little pains to 22-34) on the meaning of the image and
conceal his sense of this in his personal inter- likeness of God in which man was created.
course as in his correspondence with Flavian, (iv) A treatise on the Life of Moses as exhib--,
we cannot be surprised at the metropolitan's iting a pattern of a perfect Christian life
dignity being severely wounded. Helladius dedicated to Caesarius. (v) Two books on the
revenged himself by gross rudeness to Gregory. Superscriptions of the Psalms, in which he
Having turned out of his way to pay his endeavoiurs to shew that the five books of the
respects to his metropolitan, Gregory was kept Psalter are intended to lead men upward, as
standing at the door under the midday sun, by five steps, to moral perfection, (vi) Eight
and when at last admitted to Helladius's homilies expository of Ecclesiastes, ending
presence, his complimentary speeches were with c. vii. 13, " less forced, more useful, and
received with chilling silence. When he mild- more natural" (Dupin). (vii) Fifteen hom-
ly remonstrated, Helladius broke into cutting ilies on the Canticles, ending with c. vi. 9 ;

reproaches, and rudely drove him from his dedicated to Olympias. (viii) Five homilies
presence {Ep. ad Flavian, t. iii. pp. 645 seq.). on the Lord's Prayer, " lectu dignissimae "
Gregory was present at the synod at Constan- (Fabric). (ix) Eight homilies on the Beati-
tinople in 383, when he delivered his discourse tudes, (x) A discourse on i Cor. xv. 28, in
on the Godhead of the Second and Third which he combats the Arian perversion of the
Persons of the Trinity {de Abraham, t. iii. passage as to the subjection of the Son. (xi)
pp. 464 seq. ;cf. Tillem. Mem. eccles. ix. p. A short treatise on the witch of Endor,
586, S. Greg, de Nysse, art. x.), and again at 'Eyyaa-TpifjLvdos, to prove that the apparition
Constantinople in A. D. 385, when he pronounced was a demon in the shape of Samuel ; ad-
the funeral oration over the little princess dressed to a bishop named Theodosius.
Pulcheria, and shortly afterwards over her (2) Dogmatical.— These are deservedly re-
mother the empress Flaccilla. Both orations garded as among the most important patristic
are extant (t. iii. pp. 514 seq., 527 seq.). contributions towards a true view of the
During these visits to Constantinople, Gregory mystery of the Trinity, hardly, if at all,
obtained the friendship of Olympias, the inferior to the writings of Basil, (i) Chief,
celebrated deaconess and correspondent of both in size and importance, is his great work
Chrysostom, at whose instance he undertook Against Eunomius, written after Basil's death,
an exposition of the Canticles, a portion of to refute the reply of Eunomius to Basil's
which, containing 15 homilies, he completed attack upon his teaching, and to vindicate his
and sent her (in Cant. Cantic. t. i. pp. 468 seq.). brother from the calumnious charges of his
Gregory was present at the synod at Constan- adversary. (ii) Almost equally important
tinople A.D. 394, under the presidency of are the replies to Apollinaris, especially the
Nectarius, to decide between the claims of Antirrheticus adversus Apollinarem. These
Bagadius and Agapius to the see of Bostra in are not only valuable as giving the most
Arabia (Labbe, Concil. ii. 1151). At the weighty answer on the orthodox side to this
request of Nectarius Gregory delivered the heresv, but their numerous extracts from
homily bearing the erroneous title, de Ordina- Apollinarian writings are really the chief
tione, which is evidently a production of his sources of our acquaintance with those doc-
<
old age (t. ii. pp. 40 seq.). His architectural trines. The same subjects are treated with
taste appears in this homily. It is probable great accuracy of thought and spiritual in-
that he did not long survive this synod. The sight in (iii) Sermo Catecheticus Magnus, a
date of his death was perhaps a.d. 395. work in 40 chapters, containing a systematized
Gregory Nyssen was a very copious writer, course of theological teaching for catechists,
and the greater part of his recorded works proving, for the benefit of those who did not
have been preserved. They may be divided accept the authority of Holy Scripture, the
into five classes: (i) Exegetical ; (2) Dog- harmony of the chief doctrines of the faith
matical; (3) Ascetic; (4) Funeral Orations with the instincts of the human heart. This
and Panegyrical Discourses ; (5) Letters. work contains passages asserting the annihila-
(i) Exegetical. — What exegesis of Holy tion of evil, the restitution of all things, and
Scripture he has left is of no high value, his the final restoration of evil men and evil
— ;

GREGORIUS NYSSENUS GREGORIUS 421

spirits to the blessedness of union with God, mounted by a conical spire, rising from a
so that He may be " all in all," embracing all clerestory supported on eight columns, proves
things endued with sense and reason him to have possessed considerable technical
doctrines derived by Gregory from Origen. It knowledge. Itperhaps the clearest and
is
has been asserted from the time of Germanus most detailed description of an ecclesiastical
of Constantinople that these passages were building of the 4th cent, remaining to us. His
foisted in by heretical writers (Phot. Cod. 233, letter to Adelphius (Ep. 20) furnishes a
pp. 904 sqq.) ;but there is no foundation for charming description of a country villa, and
this hypothesis. The concluding section of its groves and ornamental buildings. Cave,
the work, which speaks of the errors of Hist. Lit. vol. i. pp. 244 sqq. Ceillier, Auteurs
;

Severus, a century posterior to Gregory, is \


eccles. t. vii. pp. 320 sqq. Oudin, I. diss. iv.
;

evidently an addition of some blundering I


Schrockh, Kirchengesch. Bd. xiv. 1-147; Tillem.
copyist. It must be acknowledged that in his j
Mem. eccles. t. ix. Dupin, cent. iv. Fabric.
; ;

desire to exalt the divine nature Gregory came I


Btbl. Graec. pp. 98 sqq.
t. ix. [e-v.]
dangerously near the doctrines afterwards j
Gregorlus (16), bp. of Merida from c. 402 ;

developed by Eutyches and the Monothelites, j


known to us only from the decretal of Innocent
if he did not actually enunciate them. While : I. addressed ad universes episcopos in Tolosa

he rightly held that the infinite Logos was not I


(should be qui in Toleto congregati sunt).
imprisoned in Christ's human soul and body, j
Innocent's letter (which Jaffe dates 404) is
he does not assign the proper independence to ;
concerned partly with the schism of those
this human soul and will. Hooker quotes j
bishops of Baetica and Cartbaginensis who
some words of his as to the entire extinction i refused to acknowledge the authority of the
of all distinction between the two natures of I
council held at Toledo a.d. 400, which re-
Christ, as a drop of vinegar is lost in the i
admitted to communion the once Priscillianist
ocean (Eccl. Pol. t. ii. 697), which he deems so bishops, Symphosius and Dictinius, and
plain and direct for Eutyches that he " stands
I

[
partly with certain irregularities in the
in doubt they are not his whose name they I
manner of ordination then prevalent in Spain.
carry " {ih. bk. v. c. iii. § 2 cf.
; Neander, I
The pope lays down that although, strictly
Ch. Hist. vol. iv. p. 115, Clark's trans.). j
speaking, the illegal ordinations already made
(3) The class of his Ascetical Writings is i
ought to be cancelled, yet, for the sake of
small. To it belong his early work de Virgini- peace and to avoid tumults, what is past is
tate; his Canonical Epistles to Letoius, bp. of to be condoned. The number of canonically
Melitene, classifying sins, and the penances invalid ordinations recently made is, he says,
due to each etc.
;
so great that otherwise the existing confusion
(4) The chief Funeral Orations are those on would be made worse instead of better.
his brother Basil, on Meletius, on the empress " How many have been admitted to the
FlacciUa, and on the young princess Pulcheria. priesthood who, like Rufinus and Gregory,
We have also several panegyrical discourses have after baptism practised in the law
and some homilies. courts ? How many soldiers who, in obedi-
(5) The extant Epistles are not numerous. ence to authority, have been obliged to execute
The chief are that to Flavian, complaining of harsh orders (severa praecepta) ? How many
contumelious treatment by Helladius, and the curiales who, in obedience also, have done
two on Pilgrimages to Jerusalem. whatever was commanded them ? How
All previous edd. of his collected works many who have given amusements and spec-
trans, into Latin were greatly surpassed in tacles to the people (voluptates et editiones
"
elegance and accuracy by that of Paris, populo celebrarunt) have become bishops ?
1603, under the superintendence of Front du (See Gams's comments on Can. 2 of council of
Due. The first ed. of the Greek text with I
Eliberi. ii. i, 53.) " Quorum omnium neminem
a Latin trans, appeared from Morel's press at i ne ad societatem quidem ordinis clericorum,
Paris in 1615 in two vols, fol., also ed. by i
oportuerat pervenire " (see Decret. cap. iv.
Du Due. Other complete reprints, including I
Tejada y Ramiro Col. de Can. ii.). In cap.
;

his epistles and other additatnenta, are by V. we have the second mention of Gregory.
Galland (Bibl. Vet. Patr. t. vi.) and Migne " Let the complaint, if any, of Gregory, bp.
{Patr. Gk. xliv.-xlvi.). A good critical ed. of of Merida, ordained in place of Patruinus [who
his works is, however, much wanted. Such an presided at C. Tol. I.] be heard, and if he has
ed. was commenced by Forbes and Oehler in suffered injury contra tneritum suum, let those
1855, but very little has appeared. In the who are envious of another's office be pun-
Journ. of Theol. Stud., 1902, is an art. by J. H. ished, lest in future the spirit of faction should
Srawley on the text of the Orat. Cat., and in again inconvenience good men."
1903 the same vvTiter ed. it for the Camb. Univ. From these notices it appears that Gregory
Texts. Another useful ed. of it was pub. in succeeded Patruinus in the metropolitan see
1909 in Gk. and French by Meridier in of Merida shortly after the council of Toledo
Textes et Documents of Hemmer and Lejay. in 400, that in his youth and after baptism he
An Eng. trans, is in the Post-Nic. Fathers. had practised as an advocate that his ;

The familiar letters published by Zacagni and election to the bishopric was therefore, strictly
Caraccioli are very helpful towards forming speaking, illegal, and that his appointment
an estimate of Gregory's character. They had met with great opposition. Innocent's
shew us a man of great refinement, with a love letter would naturally confirm him in his see
for natural beauty and a lively appreciation of and discredit the party of opposition. It was
the picturesque in scenery and of elegance in probablj' during Gregory's pontificate that the
architecture. Of the latter art the detailed irruption of Vandals, Alani, and Suevi into
description given in his letter to Amphilochius Spain took place (in the autumn of 409, Idat.
{Ep. 25) of an octagonal " martyrium " sur- ap. Esp. Sagr. iv. 353), and those scenes of
"

422 GREGORIUS THEOPOLITANUS GREGORIUS TURONENSIS


horror and cruelty took place of which Idatius On the removal of Asterius, his successor, John,
has left us a vivid, though possibly exagger- was commissioned by the emperor to inquire
ated, picture. After a first period of indiscri- into the charges against Gregory, who pro-
minate devastation and plunder, the invaders, ceeded to Constantinople, accompanied by
settling down, divided the provinces among Evagrius as his legal adviser, c. 589, and
themselves by lot (Idat. I.e. ann. 411). In this received a triumphal acquittal (ih. vi. 7). He
division Lusitania and Carthaginensis fell to returned to Antioch to witness its almost total
the Alani, themselves to be shortly destroyed destruction by earthquake, a.d. 589, barely
by the Goths under Walga (418), and Merida escaping with his life [ib. c. 8). In the wide-
with its splendid buildings and Roman spread discontent of the imperial forces, the
prestige, with all the other great cities of troops in Syria on the Persian frontier broke
S. Spain, " submitted to the rule of the bar- out into open mutiny. Gregory, who by his
barians who lorded it over the Roman prov- largesses had made himself very popular with
inces." Innocent's letter concerning Gregory the troops, was dispatched to bring them back
is extremely valuable for Spanish church to their allegiance. He was suffering severely
history at the time. Esp. Sagr. xiii. 163 ;
from gout, and had to be conveyed in a litter,
Gams, Kirchengesch. ii. i, 420. [m.a.w.1 from which he addressed the army so eloquent-
Gregorius (31) Theopolltanus, bp. of Antioch ly that they at once consented to accept the
A.D. 569-594. In his earliest youth he devoted emperor's nominee, Philippicus, as their com-
himself to a monastic life, and became so mander. His harangue is preserved by his
celebrated for his austerities that when scarce- grateful friend Evagrius (ib. c. ir-13). Soon
ly past boyhood he was chosen superior of the after, his diplomatic skill caused him to be
Syrian laura of Pharon or Pharan (Moschus), selected by Maurice as an ambassador to the-
called by Evagrius the monastery of the younger Chosroes, when compelled by his
Byzantines. Sergius the Armenian in the disasters to take refuge in the imperial
monastery of the Eunuchs near the Jordan territory, a.d. 590 or 591, and Gregory's advice
was earnestly importuned by Gregory to was instrumental in the recovery of his throne,
conduct him to his venerable master, another for which the grateful monarch sent him some
Sergius, dwelling by the Dead Sea. When the gold and jewelled crosses and other valuable
latter saw Gregory approach, he cordially presents (ib. c. 18-21). In spite of his age
saluted him, brought water, washed his feet, and infirmities, Gregory conducted a visitation
and conversed with him upon spiritual of the remoter portions of his patriarchate,
subjects the whole day. Sergius the disciple which were much infected with the doctrines
afterwards reminded his master that he had of Severus, and succeeded in bringing back
never treated other visitors, although some whole tribes, as well as many separate villages
had been bishops and presbyters, as he had and monasteries, into union with the catholic
treated father Gregory. " Who father Gre- church (ib. c. 22). After this he paid a visit
gory may be," the old man replied, " I know to Simeon Stylites the vounger, who was
not but this I know, I have entertained a
; suffering from a mortal disease iih. c. 23).
patriarch in my cave, and I have seen him Soon after he appears to have resigned his see
carry the sacred pallium and the Gospels " into the hands of the deposed patriarch Anas-
(Joann. Mosch. Prat. Spirit, c. 139, 140, in tasius, who resumed his patriarchal authority
From Pharan Gregory
Patr. Lat. Ixxiv. 189). in 594, in which year Gregory died (ib. c. 24).
was summoned by Justin II. to preside over His extant works consist of a homily in
the monastery of Mount Sinai (Evagr. H. E. Mtdieres unguentiferas found in Galland and
v. 6). On the expulsion of Anastasius, bp. Migne (Patr. Gk. Ixxxviii. p. 1847), and two
of Antioch, by Justin in 569, Gregory was sermons on the Baptism of Christ, which have
appointed his successor. Theophanes (Chron. been erroneously ascribed to Chrysostom.
A.D. 562, p. 206) makes his promotion take Evagrius (vi. 24) also attributes to Gregory a
place from the Syrian monastery. His volume of historical collections, now lost.
administration is highly praised by Evagrius, Fabric. Bibl. Grace, xi. 102 Cave, Hist. Lat.
;

who ascribes to him almost every possible i. 534. Cf. Huidacher in Zeitschr. fiir Kathol.
excellence. When Chosroes I. invaded the Theol. 1901, XXV. 367. [e.v.]
Roman territory, a.d. 572, Gregory, who was Gregorius (32) Turonensis, bp. of Tours (c.
kept informed of the real state of affairs by his 573-594). His life we know chiefly from his
friend the bp. of Nisibis, then besieged by the own writings. The Vita per Odonem Abbatem,
Roman forces, vainly endeavoured to rouse generally pub. with his works, is almost en-
the feeble emperor by representations of the tirely based upon what he says of himself.
successes of the Persian forces and the incom- Gregory himself gives a list of his works.
petence of the imperial commanders. An At the end of his History he says, "Decern
earthquake compelled Gregory to flee with the libros historiarum, septem miraculorum, unum
treasures of the church, and he had the de vitis Patrum scripsi in Psalterii tractatum
:

mortification of seeing Antioch occupied by librum unum comment atus sum : de cursibus
the troops of Adaormanes, the general of etiam ecclesiasticis unum librum condidi
Chosroes (Evagr. H. E. v. 9). The latter years (bk. X. 31, sub fin.). Of these all are extant
of his episcopate were clouded by extreme except the commentary on the Psalms, of
unpopularity and embittered by grave which only fragments exist, collected in vol.
accusations (ih. c. 18). In the reign of iii. of Bordier's ed. pp. 401 sqq. His History
Maurice, a.d. 588, a quarrel with Asterius, the is in vol. ii. of Bouquet, and in the collections
popular Count of the East, again aroused the of La Eigne, Duchesne, and Migne. There are
passions of the excitable Antiochenes against valuable edd. bv the Societe de I'Histoire de
their bishop. He was openly reviled by the France, with French trans, and notes, viz.
mob, and turned into ridicule on the stage. the Hist. eccl. des Francs, edited by MM.
GREGORIUS TURONENSIS GREGORIUS TURONENSIS 423

Guadet et Taranne (4 vols. 1836-1838), and widow of Clotaire I., foundress of St. Cross at
Les Livres des miracles et autres opuscules, in- Poictiers, who, according to Fortunatus, helped
cluding the Vita, extracts from Fortunatus, to procure his election (Carm. v. 3).
etc., by M. H. L. Bordier (4 vols. 1857-1864). The elevation of Gregory was contemporary
But the best and most recent ed. is that of with the renewed outbreak of civil war between
W. Arndt and Br. Krusch in Mon. Germ. Hist. Sigebert and Chilperic, the former of whom
Script Rez. Merov. i. This contains an Index, had inherited the Austrasian, the latter the
Orthographica, Lexica et Grammatica. Of Neustrian, possessions of their father Clotaire
the commentaries and works bearing on his I. (d. 561). The possession of Touraine and
life and writings, the most important and Poitouwas in some sort the occasion of thewar,
thorough are Lobell's Gregor von Tours und and these countries suffered from the ravages of
seine Zeit (2nd ed. 1869), and Gabriel Monod's both parties. Gregory's sympathies were natu-
Etudes critiques sur Vepoqtte merovingienne, rally with Sigebert (Vita S. Greg. § 11), and the
pt. i. 1872, being fasc. No. 9 of the Bibliotheque peopleof Toursweregenerally (H. iv. 50), though
de I'ecole des hautes etudes. not unanimously (iv. 46), on the same side.
Georgius Florentius (subsequently called Chilperic, according to Gregory, was even more
Gregorius, after his great-grandfather) was cruel and regardless of human life than the
born Nov. 30, 538. Previous authorities have other Merovingian princes he was the " Nero
;

generally given the year 543, from the passage and Herod of his age " (vi. 46) he not only
;

in the Vita which states that he was 30 years plundered and burned throughout the country,
old at the time of his consecration, i.e. in 573. but specially destroyed churches and mon-
Members of both parents' families had held asteries, slew priests and monks, and paid no
high office in church and state. His paternal regard to the possessions of St. Martin (iv. 48).
grandfather Georgius and his maternal great- Tours remained under Chilperic till his death
grandfather Florentius (V. P. 8, i) had been in 584, and some of the best traits in Gregory's
senators at Clermont. Gallus, son of Geor- character appear in his resistance to the
gius and uncle of Gregory, was bp. of murderous violence of the king and the
Auvergne another uncle, Nicetius or Nizier,
;
truculent treachery of Fredegund. Thus he
bp. of Lyons {H. v. 5 V. P. 8)
; another,
; braved their wrath, and refused to surrender
Gundulf, had risen to ducal rank {H. vi. 11). their rebellious son Meroveus (v. 14), and
Gregory, bp. of Langres, and originally count their enemy Guntram Boso who had defeated
of Autun, was his great-grandfather, and all and killed Theodebert (v. 4), both of whom
the previous bishops of Tours, except five, had had taken sanctuary at the shrine of St.
been of his family (v. 50). It is with justifi- Martin ; and Gregory alone of the bishops
able pride, therefore, that he asserts {V. P. 6) dared to rebuke Chilperic for his unjust
that none in Gaul could boast of purer and conduct towards Praetextatus, and to protect
nobler blood than himself. His father appears Praetextatus from the vengeance of Frede-
to have died early, and Gregory received most gund (v. 19) ;and when Chilperic wanted to
of his education from his uncle Gallus, bp. of force on his people his views of the doctrine
Auvergne. Being sick of a fever in his youth, of the Trinity, Gregory withstood him. Chil-
he found relief by visiting the shrine of St. peric recited to Gregory what he had written
Illidius, the patron saint of Clermont. The on the subject, saying, " I will that such shall

fever returned, and Gregory's life was despaired be your belief and that of all the other doctors
of. Being again carried to St. Illidius's shrine, of the church." " Do not deceive yourself,
he vowed to dedicate himself to the ministry my lord king," Gregory replied; " you must
if he recovered, nor would he quit the shrine follow in this matter the teaching of the
till his prayer was granted {V. P. 2, 2). apostles and doctors of the church, the teach-
Armentaria, Gregory's mother, returned to ing of Hilary and Eusebius, the confession
Burgundy, her native country, and Gregory that you made at baptism." " It appears
apparently lived with Avitus, at first arch- then," angrily exclaimed the king, " that
deacon, afterwards bp. of Auvergne, who Hilary and Eusebius are my declared enemies
carried on his education, directing his pupil in this matter." "No," said Gregory;
rather to the study of ecclesiastical than of "neither God nor His saints are your enemies,"
secular works. Gregory looked upon Avitus and he proceeded to expound the orthodox doc-
as in the fullest sense his spiritual father. trine of the Trinity. Chilperic was very angry.
" It was his teaching and preaching that, next " I shall set forth my ideas to those who are
to the Psalms of David, led me to recognize wiser than you, and they will approve of
that Jesus Christ the Son of God had come them." " Never," was the answer, " it would
into the world to save sinners, and caused me be no wise man, but a lunatic, that would
to reverence and honour those as the friends adopt such views as yours " (v. 45).
and disciples of Christ who take up His cross Gregory had a persistent enemy in I.eud-
and follow in His steps" {V. P. 2, Intro.). astes, count of Tours (v. 49). When removed
By Avitus he was ordained deacon, probably from office because of his misdeeds, he endeav-
c. 563 (Monod. 29). oured to take revenge on Gregory by maligning
Of Gregory's life before he became bp. of him to the king, that he was going to deliver
Tours few details are known. He appears to over the city to Childebert, Sigebert's son, and
have been well known at Tours {Mir. Mart. finally that Gregory had spread a report of
i. 32, Vita, c. ii.), for it was in consequence Fredegund's adultery. Chilperic summoned
of the expressed wish of the whole people a council of the bishops of the kingdom at
of Tours, clergy and laity, that Sigebert Braine, near Soissons, to investigate the
appointed him, in 573, to the see. He was charge, and it was found that the accusation
consecrated by Egidius of Rheims. He was rested solelv on the evidence of Leudastes and
known to and lavoured by Radegund the Riculfus. All agreed that the witness of an
424 GREGORIUS TURONENSIS GREGORIUS TURONENSIS
inferior was not to be believed against a priest Gregory magnifies the sanctity and power
and his superior, and Gregory was acquitted of Tours's great patron St. Martin. He main-
on condition of solemnly disclaiming on oath tained the rights of sanctuary of the shrine in
all cognizance of the charge. Leudastes fled ;
favour of the most powerful offenders, and in
Riculfus was condemned to death at Gre-
: spite of the wrath of Chilperic and Fredegund
gory's intercession he was spared death, but {e.g. Meroveus, Guntram Boso, Ebrulfus, vii.
not horrible torture (v. 48-50 Gregoire de
; 22, 29). He was a builder of churches in the
Tours au concile de Braitte, par S. Prioiix, city and see, and especially a rebuilder of the
Paris, 1847, is a mere rechauffe of Gregory's great church of St. Martin (x. 31). He did
own account of these proceedings, and of no his best to arbitrate in and appease the bloody
independent critical value). The subsequent feuds of private or political partisanship (vii.
fate of Leudastes illustrates the best side of 47) and was a rigorous and effectual defender
Gregory's character. After being a fugitive of the exemption of the city from increased
in different parts of Gaul, Leudastes presented taxation (ix. 20). Evidently a man of
himself at Tours to have his excommunication unselfish earnestness and energy, he was
removed with a view to marrying and settling popular with all in the cit}'.
there. He brought letters from several Gregory began to write first as bishop, his
bishops, but none from queen Fredegund, his subject being the Miracles of St. Martin.
principal enemy, and when Gregory wrote to Venantius Fortunatus in 576 alludes to the
her, she asked Gregory to postpone receiving work, probably to the first two books, which,
back Leudastes into communion till further in- however, were not completed till 583, the
quiry had been made. Gregory, suspicious of third book not before 587, and the fourth was
Fredegund's design, warned Leudastes's father- still incomplete at Gregory's death. The'
in-law, and besought him to induce Leudastes Gloria Martyrum was composed c. 585. Gre-
to keep quiet till Fredegund's anger was ap- gory wrote also the Gloria Confessorum (com-
peased. "This advice," says Gregory, " I gave pleted 588) and the Vitae Pairum, the latter
sincerely, and for the love of God, but Leud- being continued till the time of his death.
astes suspected treachery, and refused to take The History appears to have been written
it so the proverb was fulfilled which I once
: contemporaneously with the Miracles of the
heard an old man tell, '
Always give good Saints, most probably in several divisions
counsel to friend and foe ; the friend will take and at different times. Giesebrecht, who has
it, the foe will despise it.' " Leudastes went carefully investigated the internal evidence,
to the king to get his pardon ; Chilperic was comes to the following conclusions. The
willing, but warned him to be careful till the History was originally written at three separ-
queen's wrath was appeased. Leudastes rashly ate periods, and falls into three separate
tried to force forgiveness from the queen. divisions. Bks. i.-iv. and the first half of bk.
Fredegund was implacable and furious, and V. were probably composed c. 577 ; from the
Leudastes was put to death with great cruelty. middle of bk. v. to the end of the 37th chapter
" He deserved his death," says Gregory, " for of bk. viii. in 584 and 585 ; the remainder in
he had ever led a wicked life " (H. vi. 32). 590 and 591. The last chapter of the last
During the wars that followed the death of book is an epilogue, separately composed for ;

Chilperic in 584, Touraine and Poitou desired the history as a history is unfinished. Gre-
to be subject to Childebert, Sigebert's son, gory would probably have carried it on at
i.e. to resume their allegiance to the Austra- least to the death of Guntram in Mar. 593.
sian king, but were compelled to submit As in the case of the books of the Miracles,
to Guntram, king of Orleans and Burgundy Gregory appears to have revised his History,
(vii. 12, 13), and under his power they re- and we find in the earlier books insertions and
mained till restored to Childebert by the treaty references to Gregory's other works and to
of Andelot in 587, in concluding which Gregory- events of later date. This revision does not
was one of Childebert's commissioners (iv. 20). appear to have reached further than the end
Guntram died in 593. Childebert succeeded of bk. vi. ; hence several MSS., and these the
hini as the treaty had provided, and the latest most ancient, contain only the first six books,
notice in Gregory's writings is the visit of and the authors of the Hist. Epit. and of the
Childebert to Orleans after Guntram's death Gesta Reg. Franc, appear to have known only
{Mir. S. Martin, iv. 37). Gregory himself these. Monod substantially agrees with
died Nov. ly, 594. Giesebrecht as to the dates.
His activity was not confined to the general Gregory begins his History with the Crea-
affairs of the kingdom. He was even more tion, and his first book consists largely of
zealous for the welfare of his own and neigh- extracts from Eusebius, Jerome, and Orosius
bouring dioceses. His later years were much (Hist. i. Prol. sub fin. cc. 34, 37). In bk. ii.,
occupied with the disturbances caused bv which treats of the Frankish conquests, he
Chrodieldis in the nunnery at Poictiers which still owes much to Orosius and to the Lives of
had been founded by Gregory's friend St. the Saints, and quotes from Renatus Frigide-
Radegund. His first interference was in- rius and Sulpicius Alexander (ii. 9), two 5th-
effectual (ix. 39 sqq.), but the disturbance cent. writers, whose works are not extant.
having increased, Guntram and Childebert Thereafter he writes directly from oral tradi-
appointed a joint commission of bishops to tion and authorities. Bks. iii. and iv., dealing
inquire into the matter. Gregory was one of with events down to 575, are, compared with
Childebert's commissioners, but refused to those which follow, meagre and unchrono-
enter upon the work until the civil disturbance logically arranged, giving prominence to
had been actually repressed (x. 15, 16). He events in Auvergne and Burgundy (Monod,
had a great deal of trouble also with another p. 102). From 575 the narrative becomes
rebellious nun, Berthegunda (ix- 33, x. 12), fuller and more systematic, the intervals of
GREGORIUS TURONENSIS GREGORIUS I. 425

time being regularly marked. (Giesebrecht, GregoriUS (51) I. (The Great), bp. of Rome
pp. 32-34. Monod, in his 4th chap., investi- from Sept. 3, 590, to Mar. 12, 604 born at
;

gates the comparative value in different parts Rome probably c. 540, of a wealthy senatorial
of the work of the documentary and oral family. The family was a religious one his ;

sources of the History.) mother Silvia, and Tarsilla and Aemiliana, the
Gregory apologizes more than once for the two sisters of his father Gordianus, have been
rudeness of his style. But rough though this canonized. Under such influences his educa-
might be, he was far from lacking learning or tion is spoken of by his biographer, John the
culture such as his age could afford. Though deacon, as having been that of a saint among
ignorant of Greek, he had a fair acquaintance saints. Gregory of Tours, his contemporary,
with Latin authors, quoting or referring to says that in grammar, rhetoric, and logic he
Livy, Pliny, Cicero, Aulus Gellius, etc. (Monod, was accounted second to none in Rome (Hist.
112). He does not attempt to make his X. i). He studied law, distinguished himself
History a consistent and well-balanced whole, in the senate, and at an early age (certainly
nor to subordmate local to general interests. before 573) was recommended by the emperor
The fullness of his recital of particular events Justin il. for the post of praetor urbis. After
depends not upon intrinsic importance but a public career of credit, his deep religious
upon the amount of information he has at ideas suggested a higher vocation and on his ;

command. So too he follows the dramatic father's death he kept but a small share of the
method, putting speeches into the mouths of great wealth that came to him, employing the
individuals which are the composition of the rest in charitable uses, and especially in
author. Even where he depends upon founding monasteries, of which he endowed
written authorities he is, in detail, untrust- six in Sicily, and one, dedicated to St. Andrew,
worthy. Where he can be compared with on the site of his own house near the church
writers now extant, as in the first two books of SS. John and Paul at Rome. Here he
of the History, his inaccuracy is seen to be himself became a monk. The date of his first
considerable. He transcribes carelessly, and retirement from the world, and its duration,
often cites from memory, giving the substance are uncertain, as are also the exact dates of
of that which he has read, and that not cor- subsequent events previous to his accession
rectly (see instances ap. Monod, pp. 80 sqq.). to his see ; but the most probable order of
Little confidence can be placed in his narrative events is here followed. During his seclusion
of events outside of Gaul, and the less the his asceticism is said to have been such as to
farther the scene of action is removed from endanger his life had he not been prevailed on
Gaul. His sincerity and impartiality have by friends to abate its rigour and it may have
;

been attacked on various grounds : that he partly laid the foundation of his bad health in
unduly favours the church, or that he traduces later life. Gregory Turonensis speaks of his
the church in his accounts of the wickedness stomach at this time being so enfeebled by fast
of the bishops of the time, or that he traduces and vigil that he could hardly stand. Bene-
the character of the Franks (Kries, de Gregorii dict L, having ordained him one of the seven
Turonensis episcopi vita et scriptis, Breslau, deacons (reoionarii) of Rome, sent him as his
1859), whether from motives of race-jealousy apocrisiarius to Constantinople, and he was
or any other. Gregory looks upon history similarly employed in 579 by Benedict's suc-
as a struggle of the church against unbelief cessor Pelagius IL After this Gregory resided
in heathen and heretics and worldly-minded- three years in Constantinople, where two
ness in professing Christians. Hence he begins noteworthy events occurred : his controversy
his History with a confession of the orthodox with Eutychius, the patriarch, about the
faith. The epithet ecclesiastica applied to the nature of the resurrection body and the ;

History from Ruinart's time is a misnomer in commencement of his famous work Magna
the modern sense, for Gregory specially Moralia. Recalled by Pelagius to Rome, he
defends his method of mixing things secular was allowed to return to his monastery, but
and religious. With a man so passionate and was still employed as the pope's secretary.
impressionable as Gregory, the fact of his During his renewed monastic life and in his
being a priest and the bishop of the see of St. capacity of abbat he was distinguished for the
Martin, the ecclesiastical and religious centre strictness of his own life and the rigour of his
of Gaul, does influence his feelings and actions discipline. One story which he tells leaves
towards individuals. But ecclesiastical pre- an impression of zeal carried to almost in-
judices did not prevent him recording events human harshness. A monk, Julius, who had
as related to him. He shews no rancour in been a physician and had attended Gregory
treating of the Prankish conquerors, such as himself, night and day, during a long illness,
would be natural in the victim of an op- being himself dangerously ill, confided to a
pressed nationality. After the first days of brother that, in violation of monastic rule, he
the conquest there was no political subjection had three pieces of gold concealed in his cell.
of Roman to Teuton as such ; Romans were This confession was overheard, the cell
not excluded from offices and dignities because searched, and the pieces found. Gregory
of their birth (pp. 101-118). forbade all to approach the offender, even in
Gregory's work remains, despite all, as the the agonies of death, and after death caused
great and in many respects the only authority his body to be thrown on a dunghill with the
for the history of the 6th cent., and his fresh pieces of gold, the monks crying aloud, " Thy
and simple, though not unbiassed, narrative money perish with thee " (Greg. Dial. iv. 55).
is of the greatest value. He tells us exactly On Feb. 8, 590, Pelagius IL died, Rome
what the Franks were like, and what life in being then in great straits. The Lombards
Gaul was like ; and he gives us the evidence were ravaging the country and threatening
upon which his judgment is founded, [t.r.b.] the city, aid being craved in vain from the

426 GREGORIUS I. GREGORIUS I.

distant emperor within famine and plague declared his reception of the first four general
;

were raging. Gregory was at once unanimous- councils, as of the four gospels, and his
ly chosen by senate, clergy, and people to condemnation of the Three Chapters i.e. the
succeed Pelagius but to him his election was writings of three deceased prelates, Theodorus,
;

distressing, and he wrote to the emperor Theodoret, and Ibas, supposed to savour of
Mauricius imploring him not to confirm it. heresy, and already condemned by Justinian
His letter was intercepted by the prefect of and by the fifth council called oecumenical.
Rome, and another sent, in the name of The strong language in which he exalts the
senate, clergy, and people, earnestly request- authority of the four councils as " the square
ing confirmation. Before the reply of the stone on which rests the structure of the faith,
emperor reached Rome, Gregory aroused the the rule of every man's actions and life, which
people to repentance by his sermons, and foundation whoever does not hold is out of the
instituted the famous processional litany, building," is significant of his views on the
called Litania septiformis. The emperor con- authority of the church at large, while his
firmed the election of Gregory, who fled in recognition of the four patriarchs as co-
disguise, was brought back in triumph, con- ordinate potentates, to whom he sends an
ducted to the church of St. Peter, and im- account of his own faith, expresses one aspect
mediately ordained on Sept. 3, 590 (Anastas. of the relation to the Eastern churches which
Bibliothec. and Marty rol. Roman.). then satisfied the Roman pontiffs. He lost
After his accession he continued in heart a no time in taking measures for the restoration
monk, surrounding himself with ecclesiastics of discipline, the reform of abuses, the repres-
instead of laymen, and living with them sion of heresy, and the establishment of the
according to monastic rule. In accordance authority of the Roman see, both in his own
with this plan a synodal decree was made metropolitan province and wherever his
under him in 595, substituting clergy or monks influence extended. That jurisdiction was
for the boys and secular persons who had threefold — episcopal, metropolitan, and patri-
formerly waited on the pope in his chamber archal. As bishop he had the oversight of the
(Ep. iv. 44). Yet he rose at once to his new city as metropolitan of the seven suffragan,
;

position. The church shared in the distress afterwards called cardinal, bishops of the
and disorganization of the time. The fires of Roman territory, i.e. of Ostia, Portus, Silva
controversy of the last two centuries still Candida, Sabina, Praeneste, Tusculum, and
raged in the East. In Istria and Gaul the Albanum ; while his patriarchate seems to
schism on the question of the Three Chapters have originally extended (according to
continued in Africa the Donatists once more Rufinus, H. E. i. [x.] 6) over the suburban
;

became aggressive against the Catholics. provinces under the civil jurisdiction of the
Spain had but just, and as yet imperfectly, vicarius urbis, including Upper Italy, Sicily,
recovered from Arianism. In Gaul the church Sardinia, and Corsica. But being the only
was oppressed under its barbarian rulers in patriarch in the West, he had in fact claimed
;

Italy, under the Arian Lombards, the clergy and exercised jurisdiction beyond these original
were infected with the demoralization of the limits, including the three other vicariates
day. The monastic s^'stem was suffering into which the prefecture of Italv was
declension and was now notoriously corrupt. politically divided: N. Italy, with its centre
Literature and learning had almost died with at Milan, W. Illyricum, with its capital at
Boethius ; and all these causes combined Sirmium, and W. Africa, with its capital at
with temporal calamities led to a prevalent Carthage. Before his accession a still wider
belief, which Gregory shared, that the end of authority had been claimed and in part
all things was at hand. Nor was the position acknowledged. As bishops of the old im-
of the papacy encouraging to one who, like perial city, with an acknowledged primacy of
Gregory, took a high view of the prerogatives honour among the patriarchs, still more as
of St. Peter's chair. Since the recovery of occupants of St. Peter's chair and conservators
Italy by Justinian (after the capture of Rome of his doctrine, and as such consulted and
by Belisarius in 536) the popes had been far appealed to by various Western churches, the
less independent than even under the Gothic popes had come to exercise a more or less
kings. Justinian regarded the bishops of defined jurisdiction over them all. The power
Rome as his creatures, to be appointed, of sending judges to hear the appeals of con-
summoned to court, and deposed at his pleas- demned bishops, which had been accorded to
ure, and subject to the commands of his exarch pope Julius by the Western council of Sardica
at Ravenna. No reigns of popes had been so in 343, had been claimed by his successors as
inglorious as those of Gregory's immediate perpetually belonging to the Roman see and
predecessors, Vigilius, Pelagius I., Benedict, extended so as to involve the summoning of
and Pelagius II. He himself describes the cases to be heard at Rome ; and a law had
Roman church as " like an old and violently been obtained by Leo I. from Valentinian
shattered ship, admitting the waters on all (445) by which the pope was made supreme
sides, its timbers rotten, shaken by daily head of the whole Western church, with the
storms, and sounding of wreck " {Ep. i.). power of summoning prelates from all pro-
Gregory may be regarded, first, as a spiritual vinces to abide his judgment. On the as-
ruler; secondly, as a temporal administrator sumption of such authority Gregory acted,
and potentate ; lastly, as to his personal being determined to abate none of the rights
character and as a doctor of the church. claimed by his predecessors.
Immediately after his accession he sent, In the year of his accession (590) he endea-
according to custom, a confession of his faith voured, though without result, to bring over
to the patriarchs of Constantinople, Alexan- the Istrian bishops, who still refused to con-
dria, Antioch, and Jerusalem, in which he demn the Three Chapters. With this view
GREGORIUS I. GREGORIUS I. 427

he appointed a council to meet at Rome, and should be received under 18 years of age, nor
obtained an order from the emperor for the any husband without his wife's consent (in
attendance of these bishops. They petitioned one case he orders a husband who had entered
for exemption, saying that their faith was that a monastery to be restored to his wife [Ep. ix.
formerly taught them by pope Vigilius, and 44]); two years of probation should always
protesting against submission to the bp. of be required, and three in the case of soldiers ;

Rome as their judge. The emperor counter- a professed monk leaving his order should be
manded the order, and Gregory acquiesced. immured for life no monk, though an abbat,
;

In 591 his orthodox zeal was directed with should leave the precincts of his monastery,
more success against the African Donatists. except on urgent occasions ; under no pretext
It was the custom in Numidia for the senior should any monk leave his monastery alone,
bishop, whether Donatist or Catholic, to on the ground that " Qui sine teste ambulat
exercise metropolitan authority over the other non recte vivit." He provided for the more
bishops. Such senior now happened to be a complete separation of the monastic and
Donatist, and he assumed the customary clerical orders, forbidding any monk to remain
authority. Gregory wrote to the Catholic in his monastery after ordination, and any
bishops of Numidia, and to Gennadius, exarch priest to enter a monastery except to exercise
of Africa, urging them to resist such a claim clerical functions, or to become a monk with-
(Ep. i. 74, 75), and the Donatist bishop was de- out giving up his clerical office and further
;

posed, but the sect continued in Africa as long exempting some monasteries from the juris-
as Christianity did. This is not the only in- diction of bishops. This last important
stance of Gregory, like others of his age, not provision was extended to all monasteries by
being averse to persecution as a means of con- the Lateran synod, held under him in 601.
version. In Sicilyhe enjoinedrigorousmeasures He was no less zealous in his correction of
{sumtnopere perseqid) for the recovery of the the clergy. Several bishops under his imme-
Manicheans to the church {Ep. iv. 6) there, ;
diate metropolitan jurisdiction and elsewhere
and in Corsica, Sardinia, and Campania, the he rebuked or deposed for incontinency and
heathen peasants and slaves on the papal other crimes. His own nuncio at Constanti-
estates were by his order compelled to con- nople, Laurentius the archdeacon, he recalled
form, not only by exactions on such as refused, and deposed. From the clergy generally he
but also by the imprisonment of freemen, and required strict chastity, forbidding them to
the corporal castigation (verheribus et cruci- retain in their houses any women but their
atibus) of slaves {Ep. iii. 26 ;vii. ind. ii. 67), mothers, sisters, or wives married before
and in France he exhorted queen Brunichild ordination, and with these last prohibiting
to similar measures of coercion {Ep. vii. 5). conjugal intercourse {Ep. i. 50, ix. 64).
On the other hand, there are three letters of Bishops he recommends to imitate St. Augus-
his, written in the same year as those about tine in banishing from their houses even such
the African Donatists, which evince a spirit of female relatives as the canons allo%v {Ep. vii.
unusual toleration towards Jews. They are ind. ii. 39; xi. 42, 43). In Sicily the obliga-
addressed to three bishops, Peter of Tarracina, tion to celibacy had, in 588, been extended to
Virgilius of Aries, and Theodorus of Marseilles. subdeacons. This rule he upheld by directing
The first had driven the Jews from their the bishops to require a vow of celibacy from
synagogues, and the last two had converted a all who should in future be ordained sub-
number by offering them the choice of baptism deacons, but acknowledging its hardship on
or exile. Gregory strongly condemns such such as had made no such vow on their
proceedings, " because conversions wrought ordination, he contented himself with for-
by force are never sincere, and those thus bidding the advancement to the diaconate of
converted seldom fail to return to their vomit existing subdeacons who had continued con-
when the force is removed." {Ep. i. 34, i. 45 jugal intercourse after the introduction of the
;

cf. Ep. vii. ind. i. 26, vii. ind. ii. 5, vii. 2, 59.) rule {Ep. i. ind. ix. 42).
Yet he had no objection to luring them into He also set himself resolutely against the
the fold by the prospect of advantage, for prevalent simony, forbidding all bishops and
in a letter to a deacon Cyprian, who was clergy to exact or accept fee or reward for
steward of the papal patrimony in Sicily, he the functions of their office and he set the
;

directs him to offer the Jews a remission of example himself by refusing the annual pre-
one-third of the taxes due to the Roman sents which it had been customary for the
church if they became Christians, saying, in bishops of Rome to receive from their suffra-
justification, that though such conversions gans, or payment for the pallium sent to
might be insincere, their children would be metropolitans, which payment was forbidden
brought up in the bosom of the church {Ep. to all future popes by a Roman synod in 595.
iv. 6, cf. Ep. xii. 30). In such apparent in- In 592 began a struggle in reference to
consistencies we may see his good sense and discipline with certain bishops of Thessaly and
Christian benevolence in conflict with the Dalmatia, in the province of lUyricum.
impulses of zeal and the notions of his age. Hadrianus of Thebes had been deposed by a
Gregory was no less active in reforming the provincial synod under his metropolitan the
church itself. Great laxity was prevalent bp. of Larissa, and the sentence had been
among the monks, of which the life of Bene- confirmed by John of Justiniana Prima, the
dict, the founder of the Benedictine order, primate of Illyricum. The deposed prelate
affords ample evidence. Several of Gregory's appealed to Gregory, who, after examining the
letters are addressed to monks who had left whole case, ordered the primate to reinstate
their monasteries for the world and marriage. Hadrianus {Ep. ii. ind. xi. 6, 7)- He also
He issued the following regulations for the ordered Natalis, bp. of Salona in Dalmatia and
restoration of monastic discipline : no monk metropohtan, under pain of excommunication,
428 GREGORIUS I. GREGORIUS t.

to reinstate his archdeacon Honoratus whom sending her also a copy of his four books of
he had deposed [Ep. ii. ind. x. 14, 15, 16). In dialogues.
both instances he appears to have been Over the church in Ireland, then bound by
obeyed. Not so, however, in the case of no close tie of allegiance to the see of Rome,
Maximus, who succeeded NataUs as bp. of he endeavoured to extend his influence,
Salona and metropoUtan in the same year. writing in 592 a long letter to the bishops.
Maximus having been elected in opposition to Not content with thus influencing, con-
Honoratus, whom Gregory had recommended, solidating, and reforming the existing churches
the latter disallowed the election, and wrote to throughout the West, he was also a zealous
the clergy of Salona forbidding them to choose missionary, and as such the founder of our
a bishop without the consent of the apostolic English, as distinct from the more ancient
see. Meanwhile the emperor had confirmed British, Christianity. [Augustine.]
the election. After protracted negotiations, Of his relations with Constantinople and the
lasting 7 years, during which 17 letters were Eastern church, the year 593 affords the first
written by Gregory, the emperor committed example. Having heard of two presbyters,
the settlement of the dispute to Maximianus, John of Chalcedon and Anastasius of Isauria,
bp. of Ravenna, with the result that Maximus, being beaten with cudgels, after conviction on
having publicly begged pardon of the pope and a charge of heresy, under J ohn the Faster, then
cleared himself from the charge of simony by patriarch of Constantinople, Gregory wrote
an oath of purgation at the tomb of St. Apol- twice to the patriarch, remonstrating with him
linaris, was at last acknowledged as lawful bp. for introducing a new and uncanonical
of Salona (Ep. iii. ind. xii. 15, 20 ; iv. ind. xiii. punishment, exhorting him to restore the two
34 v. ind. xiv. 3
; ; vi. ind. xv. 17 vii. ind. i.
; presbyters or to judge them canonically, and"
I ; vii. ind. ii. 81, 82, 83). In the West expressing his own readiness to receive them
beyond the limits of the empire Gregory also at Rome. Notwithstanding the patriarch's
lost no opportunity of extending the mfluence protest, the presbyters thereupon withdrew
of his see and of advancing and consolidating to Rome and were received and absolved by
the church. Reccared, the Visigothic king of Gregory after examination [Ep. ii. 52, v. 64).
Spain, renounced Arianism for Catholicism at In other letters we find him saying, " With
the council of Toledo in 589, and Gregory respect to the Constantinopolitan church, who
heard of this from Leander, bp. of Seville, doubts that it is subject to the apostolical
whom he exhorted to watch over the royal see ? " and " I know not what bishop is not
convert. He sent Leander a pallium to be subject to it, if fault is found in him " [Ep. vii.
used at mass only. He wrote to Reccared ind. ii. 64, 65). But the most memorable
in warm congratulation, exhorting him to incidents in this connexion are his remon-
humility, chastity, and mercy ;thanking him strances against the assumption by John the
for presents received, and sending in return a Faster of the title of oecumenical or universal
key from the body of St. Peter, in which was bishop. They began in 595, being provoked
some iron from the chain that had bound him, by the repeated occurrence of the title in a
and a cross containing a piece of the true cross, judgment against an heretical presbyter which
and some hairs of John the Baptist [Canones had been sent to Rome. The title was not
Eccles. Hispan.)-. There is no distinct as- new. Patriarchs had been so styled by the
sumption, in these letters, of jurisdiction over emperors Leo and Justinian, and it had been
the Spanish church, and this is the only known confirmed to John the Faster and his succes-
instance of a pallium having been sent to Spain sors by a general Eastern synod at Constan-
previously to the Saracen invasion. The tinople in 5 88, pope Pelagius protesting against
ancient Spanish church does not seem to have it. Gregory now wrote to Sabinianus, his
been noted for its dependence on the Roman apocrisiarius at Constantinople, desiring him
see (see Geddes, Tracts, vol. ii. pp. 25, 49 ;
to use his utmost endeavours with the patri-
Gieseler, Eccles. Hist. vol. ii. p. 188). With arch, the emperor, and the empress, to procure
the Frank rulers of Gaul Gregory carefully the renunciation of the title ; and when this
cultivated friendly relations. In 595, at the failed, he himself wrote to all these in peculiar-
request of king Childeric, he conferred the ly strong language. The title he called foolish,
pallium on Virgilius of Aries, the ancient proud, pestiferous, profane, wicked, a diaboli-
metropolitan see, whose bishop pope Zosimus cal usurpation ; the ambition of any who
had confirmed in his metropolitan right, and assumed it was like that of Lucifer, and its
made vicar as early as 417. Not long after assumption a sign of the approach of the king
Gregory began a correspondence with queen of pride, i.e. Antichrist. His arguments are
Brunichild, in which he exhorts her to use such as to preclude himself as well as others
her power for the correction of the vices of from assuming the title, though he implies
the clergy and the conversion of the heathen. that if any could claim it it would be St.
Another royal female correspondent, culti- Peter's successors. Peter, he says, was the
vated and flattered with a similar purpose, and first of the apostles, yet neither he nor any of
one more worthy of the praise conferred, was the others would assume the title universal,
Theodelinda the Lombard queen. To 599 being all members of the church under one
is assigned the extensive conversion of the head, Christ. He also states (probably in
Lombards to Catholicism, brought about after error) that the title had been offered to the
the death of king Antharis through the mar- bp. of Rome at the council of Chalcedon, and
riage of this Theodelinda, his widow, with refused. Failing entirely to make an impres-
Agilulph duke of Turin, who consequently sion at Constantinople, he addressed himself
succeeded to the throne. With this pious to the Eastern patriarchs. He wrote to
lady, a zealous Catholic, Gregory kept up Eulogius of Alexandria and Anastasius of
a highly complimentary correspondence, Antioch, representing the purpose of their

GREGORIUS I. GREGORIUS I. 429


brother of Constantinople as being that of see was regarded appanage of a city's
as an
degrading them, and usurping to himself all civil importance, on which ground alone could
ecclesiastical power. Thev, however, were any pre-eminence be claimed for Constanti-
not thus moved to action ; they seem to have nople. In the West it was the apostolical
regarded the title as one of honour only, origin of the see, and the purely ecclesiastical
suitable to the patriarch of the imperial city ;
pre-eminence belonging to it from ancient
and one of them, Anastasius, wrote in reply times, to which especial regard was paid.
that the matter seemed to him of little mo- Thus viewed, the struggle of Gregory for the
ment. The controversy continued after the dignity of his own see against that of Con-
death of John the Faster. Gregory instructed stantinople assumes importance as a protest
his apocrisiarius at Constantinople to demand against the Erastianism of the East. It
from the new patriarch, Cyriacus, as a con- certainly would not have been well for the
dition of intercommunion, the renunciation church had the spiritual authority of the
of the proud and impious title which his bps. of Rome accrued to the subservient
predecessor had wickedly assumed. In vain patriarchs of the Eastern capital.
did Cyriacus send a nuncio to Rome in the As a temporal administrator and potentate
hope of arranging matters : Gregory was Gregory evinced equally great vigour, ability,
resolute, and wrote, " I confidently say that and zeal, guided by address and judgment.
whosoever calls himself universal priest, or The see of Rome had large possessions, con-
desires to be so called in his elation, is the fore- stituting what was called the patrimony of
runner of Antichrist." At this time he seems St. Peter, in Italy, Sardinia, and Corsica, and
to have gained a supporter, if not to his also in more remote parts, e.g. Dalmatia,
protest, at any rate to the paramount dignity Illyricum, Gaul, and even Africa and the East.
of his own see, in Eulogius of Alexandria, Over these estates Gregory exercised a
whom he had before addressed without result. vigilant superintendence by means of officers
For in answering a letter from that patriarch, called " rectores patrimonii " and " defen-
he acknowledges with approval the dignity sores," to whom his letters remain, prescribing
assigned by him to the see of St. Peter, and minute regulations for the management of the
expresses adroitly a curious viev/ of his cor- lands, and guarding especially against any
respondent, as well as the patriarch of Antioch, oppression of the peasants. The revenues
being a sharer in it. " Who does not know," accruing to the see, thus carefully secured,
he says, " that the church was built and though with every possible regard to humanity
established on the firmness of the prince of and justice, were expended according to the
the apostles, by whose very name is implied fourfold division then prevalent in the West
a rock ? Hence, though there were several viz. in equal parts for the bishop, the clergy,
apostles, there is but one apostolic see, that of the fabric and services of the church, and the
the prince of the apostles, which has acquired poor. This distribution, publicly made four
great authority ; and that see is in three times a year, Gregory personally superin-
places, in Rome where he died, in Alexandria tended. His own charities were immense, a
where it was founded by his disciple St. Mark, large portion of the population of Rome being
and in Antioch where he himself lived seven dependent on them every day, before his
:

years. These three, therefore, are but one own meal, a portion was sent to the poor at
see, and on that one see sit three bishops, who his door the sick and infirm in every street
;

are but one in Him Who said, I am in My were sought out and a large volume was
;

Father, and you in Me, and I in you." But kept containing the names, ages, and dwell-
when Eulogius in a second letter styled the ings of the objects of his bounty.
bp. of Rome universal pope, Gregory warmly A field for the exercise of his political
rejected such a title, saying, " If you give abilities was afforded by his position as virtual
more to me than is due to me, you rob yourself ruler of Rome at that critical time. His
of what is due to you. Nothing can redound letters and homilies gave a lamentable
to my honour that redounds to the dishonour account of the miseries of the country, and he
of my brethren. If you call me universal endeavoured to conclude a peace Ijetween
pope, you thereby own yourself to be no pope. Agilulph, the Lombard king, who was himself
Let no such titles be mentioned or ever heard disposed to come to terms, and the exarch
among us." Gregory was obliged at last to Romanus. These endeavours were frustrated
acquiesce in the assumption of the obnoxious by the opposition of Romanus, who represent-
title by the Constantinopolitan patriarch and ed Gregory to the emperor as having been
;

it may have been by way of contrast that he overreached by the crafty enemy. The
usually styled himself in his own letters by the emperor believed his exarch, and wrote to
title since borne by the bps. of Rome, " Servus Gregory in condemnation of his conduct. In
servorum Dei." Evidently Gregory and his vain did Gregory remonstrate in letters both
opponents took different views of the import of to the emperor and to the empress Constan-
the title contended for. They represented it tina, complaining to the latter not so much
as one simply of honour and dignity, while he of the ravages of the Lombards as of the
regarded it as involving the assumption of cruelty and exactions of the imperial officers ;

supreme authority over the church at large, but though small success crowned his efforts,
and especially over the see of St. Peter, whence whatever mitigation of distress was accom-
probably in a great measure the vehemence plished was due to him.
of his remonstrance. In the different views In 60 1 an event occurred which shews
taken appears the difference of principle on Gregory in a less favourable light, with respect
which pre-eminence was in that age thought to his relations to thepowers of theworld than
assignable to sees in the East and West anything else during his career. Phocas, a
respectively. In the East the dignity of a centurion, was made emperor by the army.
4^0 GREGORIUS I. GREGORIUS I.

He secured his throne by the murder of He was also influential as a preacher, and
Mauricius, whose six sons had been first no less famous for his influence on the music
cruelly executed before their father's eyes. and liturgy of the church whence he is
;

He afterwards put to death the empress called " magister caeremoniarum." To cul-
Constantina and her three daughters, who tivate church singing he instituted a song-
had been lured out of the asylum of a church school in Rome, called Orphanotrophmm, the
under a promise of safety. Numerous persons name of which implies also a charitable pur-
of all ranks and in various parts of the empire pose. Of it, John the deacon, after speaking
are also said to have been put to death with of the cento of antiphons which Gregory had
unusual cruelty. To Phocas and his consort carefully compiled, says " He founded a
:

Leontia, who is spoken of as little better than school of singers, endowed it with some farms,
her husband, Gregory wrote congratulatory and built for it two habitations, one under the
letters in a style of flattery beyond even what steps of the basilica of St. Peter the Apostle,
was usual with him in addressing great poten- the other under the houses of the Lateran
tates (Ep. xi. ind. vi. 38, 45, 46). His motive Palace. There to the present day his couch
was doubtless largely the hope of obtaining on which he used to recline when singing, and
from the new powers the support which his whip with which he menaced the boys,
Mauricius had not accorded him in his dispute together with his original antiphonary, are
with the Eastern patriarch. This motive preserved with fitting reverence" {Vit. Greg.
appears plainly in one of his letters to Leontia, ii. 6). It is generally alleged that, whereas
to whom, rather than to the emperor, with St. Ambrose had in the latter part of the 4th
characteristic tact, he intimates his hopes of cent, introduced at Milan the four authentic
support to the church of St. Peter, endeavour- modes or scales, called, after those of the
ing to work upon her religious fears. ancient GreeU music, Dorian, Phrygian, L^'d-'
Gregory lived only 16 months after the ian, Mixo-Lydian, St. Gregory added to them
accession of Phocas, dying after protracted the four plagal, or subsidiary, modes called
suffering from gout on Mar. 12, 604. He was Hypo-Dorian, Hypo- Phrygian, Hypo-Lydian,
buried in the basilica of St. Peter. and Hypo-Mixo-Lydian, thus enlarging the
Immediately after his death a famine allowed range of ecclesiastical melody.
occurred, which the starving multitude attri- His Septiform litany was so called from being
buted to his prodigal expenditure, and his appointed by him to be sung by the inhabitants
library was only saved from destruction by the of Rome divided into seven companies, viz.
interposition of the archdeacon Peter. of clergy, laymen, monks, virgins, matrons,
The pontificate of Gregory the Great is widows, and of poor people and children.
rightly regarded as second to none in its These, starting from 7 different churches, were
influence on the future form of Western to chant through the streets of Rome, and
Christianity. He lived in the period of tran- meet for common supplication in the church of
sition from Christendom under imperial rule the Blessed Virgin. He also appointed " the
to the medieval papacy, and he laid or stations " —
churches at which were to be held
consolidated the foundation of the latter. He solemn services in Lent and at the four great
advanced, indeed, no claims to authority festivals visiting the churches in person, and
;

beyond what had been asserted by his pre- being received with stately ceremonial.
decessors ;
yet the consistency, firmness, His extant works of undoubted genuineness
conscientious zeal, as well as address and are (i) Expositio in heatum Job, seu Moralium
:

judgment, with which he maintained it, and lib. XXXV. In this celebrated work (begun at
the waning of the power of the Eastern empire, Constantinople before he was pope and
left him virtual ruler of Rome and the sole finished afterwards) " the book of Job is
power to whom the Western church turned expounded in a threefold manner, according
for support, and whom the Christianized to its historic, its moral, and its allegorical
barbarians, founders of the new kingdom of meaning. The moral interpretation may still
Europe, regarded with reverence. Thus he be read with profit, though rather for the
paved the way for the system of papal abso- loftiness and purity of its tone than for the
lutism that culminated under Gregory VII. justness of the exposition." As to the alle-
and Innocent III. gorical interpretation, " names of persons,
As a writer he was intellectually eminent numbers, words, even syllables, are made
;

and deserves his place among the doctors of pregnant with all kinds oif mysterious mean-
the church, though his learning and mental ings " (Milman, Hist, of Latin Christianity).
attitude were those of his age. As a critic, an (2) Libri duo in Ezechielem viz. 22 homilies
:

expositor, an original thinker, he may not on Ezekiel, delivered at Rome during its siege
stand high ; he knew neither Greek nor by Agilulph. (3) Libri duo in Evangelia viz. :

Hebrew, and had no deep acquaintance with 40 homilies on the gospels for the day,
the Christian Fathers; literature for its own preached at various times. (4) Liber Regulae
sake he set little store by classical literature, Pastoralis, in 4 parts
; a treatise on the
;

as being heathen, he repudiated. Yet as a pastoral office, addressed to a bp. John to


clear and powerful exponent of the received explain and justify the writer's former reluct-
orthodox doctrine, especially in its practical ance to undertake the burden of the popedom.
aspect, as well as of the system of hagiology, This work was long held in the highest esteem.
demonology, and monastic asceticism, which Leander of Seville circulated it in Spain the ;

then formed part of the religion of Christen- emperor Mauricius had it translated into
dom, he spoke with a loud and influential voice Greek Alfred the Great translated it into
;

to many ages after his own, and contributed English a succession of synods in Gaul en-
;

more tlian any one person to fix the form joined a knowledge of it on all bishops and ;

and tone of medieval religious thought. Hincmar, archbp. of Rheims in the 9th cent.,

GREGORIUS I. GREGORIUS I. 431

says that a copy of it was delivered, to- (gth cent.) in St. Andrew's monastery, " in
gether with the book of canons, to bishops absidicula post fratrum cellarium " which ;

at their ordination, with a charge to them to he concludes to have been painted during the
frame their lives according to its precepts pope's life and by his order. That this was
{in Praefatione Opusculi 55 Capitulorum). the case is inferred from the head being sur-
(5) Dialogorum libri IV. de vita et miraculis mounted, not by a corona, but by a tabula
patrum Italicorum, et de aetcrnitate animae. ("tabulae similitudinem "), which John says
The authenticity of this work has been doubt- is the mark of a living person, and by the
ed ; apparently without adequate grounds. appended inscription :

It is written in the form of dialogues with the " Christe polens Domine, noslrl largitor honoris
archdeacon Peter, and contains accounts of Indullum officium solita pietate guberna."
saintly persons, prominent among whom is
Benedict of Nursia, the contemporary founder The figure is of ordinary size, and well formed ;

of the Benedictine order. It abounds in the face " most becomingly prolonged with a
marvels, and relates visions of the state of certain rotundity " the beard of moderate
;

departed souls, which have been a main size and somewhat tawny in the middle of
;

support, ifnot a principal foundation, of the his otherwise bald forehead are two neat little
medieval doctrine about purgatory. The curls twisting towards the right the crown ;

Dialogues were translated into Anglo-Saxon of the head is round and large dark hair, ;

by order of Alfred (Asser. Gest. Alf. in Mon. decently curled, hangs under the middle of the
Hist. Brit. 486 e). (6) Registrum Epistolarum, ear ;he has a fine forehead his eyebrows are
;

in 14 books, of which the 13th is wanting; long and elevated, but slender the pupils of;

a very varied collection of 838 letters to the eyes are of a yellow tinge, not large, but
persons of all ranks, which v^ives a vivid open, and the under-eyelids are full the nose ;

idea of his unwearied activity, the multi- is slender as it curves down from the eyebrows,
fariousness of his engagements and inter- broader about the middle, then slightly curved,
ests, his address, judgment, and versatility. and expanding at the nostrils the mouth is ;

(7) Liber Sacramentorum. This, the famous ruddy the lips thick and subdivided the
; ;

Gregorian Sacramentary, was an abbreviated cheeks regular (" compositae ") the chin ;

arrangement in one vol., with some alterations rather prominent from the confines of the
and additions, of the sacramentary of pope jaws the complexion was " aquilinus et
;

Gelasius, which again had been founded on an lividus " (al. "vividus"), not " cardiacus,"
older one attributed to pope Leo I. John the as it became afterwards, i.e. he had in the
deacon says of Gregory's work, " Sed et picture a dark but fresh complexion, though
Gelasianum codicem, de Missarum solemniis in later life it acquired an unhealthy hue.
multa subtrahens, pauca convertens, nonnulla (See Du Cange for the probable meaning of
superadjiciens, in unius libelli volumine the words.) His countenance is mild his ;

coarctavit " (Joann. Diac. in Vit. Greg. ii. 17 ;


hands good, with taper fingers, well adapted
of. Bede, H. E. ii. i). The changes made by for writing. The dress he wears is of in-
Gregory were principally in the Missae, or terest —
a chestnut-coloured planeta over a
variable offices for particular days ; in the dalmatica, which is precisely the same dress
Ordo Missae itself only two alterations are as that in which his father is depicted, and
spoken of as made by him, viz. to the part therefore not then a peculiarly sacerdotal
of the canon beginning, " Hanc igitur obla- costume. [Gordianus.] He is distinguished
tionem," he added the words, " Diesque from his father by the pallium, the then form
nostros in tua pace disponas, atque ab aeterna and mode of wearing which are intimated by
damnatione eripi et in electorum tuorum the description. It is brought from the left
jubeas grege numerari " ; and the trans- shoulder so as to hang carelessly under the
ference of the Lord's Prayer from after the breast, and, passing over the right shoulder,
breaking of bread to its present place in is deposited behind the back, the other end
the canon (Ep. ad Joann. Syrac. lib. ix. Ep. being carried straight behind the neck also
12). Whatever uncertainty there may be as to the right shoulder, from which it hangs
to the original text of Gregory's sacramentary down the side. In the left hand is a book of
as a whole, it is considered certain that the the Gospels the right is in the attitude of
;

present Roman canon and, except for certain making the sign of the cross (Joann. Diac. in
subsequent additions, the ordinarium are the Vit. Greg. 1. 4, c. 83). John describes also his
same as what he left. [Sacramentary in pallium, woven of white linen and with no
£>. C. A.] (8) Liber Antiphonarius, a collec- marks of the needle in it his phylactery or
; (

tion of antiphons for mass. To what extent case for relics), of thin silver, and hung from
this was original, or how far it may have been the neck by crimson cloth, and his belt
altered since Gregory's time, is uncertain. (" baltheus "), only a thumb's breadth wide
Of the following works attributed to Greg- which, he says, were preserved and venerated
ory, the genuineness is doubtful: (i) Liber on the saint's anniversary, and which he
Benedictionum ; (2) Liber Responsalis seu refers to as shewing the monastic simplicity
Antiphonarius ; (3) Expositiones in librum /. of Gregory's attire (ib. c. 8).
Regum ; (4) Expositiones super Canticum Our chief authorities for the Life of Gregory
Canticorum ; (5) Expositio in vii. Pss. Paeni- are his own writings, especially his letters,
tentiales ; (6) Concordia quorundam testimoni- of which a trans. (Selecta Epp.) is in Lib. of
orum sacrae Scripturae. There are also 9 Post.-Nic. Fathers. Among ancient writers
hymns attributed to him with probability. Gregory of Tours (his contemporary), Bede,
Of his personal appearance an idea may be Paul Warnefried (730), Ado Trevirensis
formed from a description given by John the (1070), Simeon Metaphrastes (1300), Isidorus
deacon of a portrait preserved to his own day Hispalensis, have detailed notices of him.
432 GUNDOBALD GUNTRAMNUS
Paul the deacon in the 8th cent., and John and the conference of Lyons demonstrate the
the deacon, a monk of Cassmo, in the gth cent., interest he took in religious subjects and his
wrote Lives of him (Greg. Op. ed. Benedict). tolerance of orthodoxy. Several of the
The Benedictine ed. of his works has a fuller bishop's letters survive, answering inquiries
Life, using additional sources. An important on various points of doctrine, e.g. the Euty-
work on Gregory the Great, his Place in chian heresy [Epp. 3 and 4), repentance in
Thought and History, was pub. by the Rev. articulo mortis, and justification by faith or
F. H. Dudden, in two vols. 4to, 1905 works (Ep. 5). One only of Gundobald's
(Lond., Longmans). A cheap popular Life by remains (Ep. 19), asking an explanation of
the author of this art. is pub. by S.P.C.K. Is. ii. 3-5, and Mic. iv. 4. These letters are
in their Fathers for Eng. Readers see also a
; in Migne, Patr. Lat. lix. 199, 202, 210, 219,
monograph on Pope Gregory the Great and 223, 236, 244, 255, and commented on in
his Relation with Gaul, by F. W. Kellett Ceillier's Hist, generate des auteurs sacres, x.
(Camb. Univ. Press). [j.b— y.] 554 sqq. He probably died an Arian. Ac-
Gundobald, 4th king of the Burgundians cording to Gregory, he was convinced and
(Greg. Tur. Hist. Franc, ii. 28). The kingdom begged Avitus to baptize him in secret, fearing
of the Burgundians, which extended from the his subjects ; but Avitus refused, and he
Vosges to the Durance and from the Alps to perished in his heresy (Hist. Franc, ii. 34, cf.
the Loire, was divided between Gundobald and iii. prologue). But there are two passages in
his surviving brother Godegiselus, the former Avitus's letters (Ep. v. sub fin. Patr. Lat. lix.
having Lyons for his capital, the latter Geneva 224, " Unde cum laetitiam — orbitatem," and
(Greg. Tur. Hist. Franc, ii. 32 ; Ennodius, Ep. ii. sub init. Patr. Lat. lix. 202, " Unicum
Vita S. Epiphanii, 50-54 ; Boll. Jan. ii. simul
cf. Mascou, Hist, of the Ancient
— principaliter de tuenda catholicae
partis veritate curetis ") which seem almost
374-375 ;

Germans, xi. 10, 31, and Annotation iv.). In to imply that he was then a Catholic. See
500 Clovis, who had married Gundobald's too Gregory's story of the piety of his queen
niece, defeated Gundobald at Dijon, with the (de Mirac. S. Juliani, ii. 8). [s.a.b.]
aid of Godegiselus who fought against his Guntramnus (2) (Guntchramnus, Gunihran-
brother, and imposed a tribute. But on nus, Gontran), St., king of Burgundy, son of
Clovis's departure he renounced his allegiance, Clotaire I. and Ingundis (Greg. Tur. Hist.
and besieged and killed his brother, who had Franc, iv. 3). Upon his father's death in
triumphantly entered Vienne. Henceforth 561, the kingdom was divided by lot between
till his death he ruled the whole Burgundian the three sons. Guntram had the kingdom
territory (Marius Avent. Chron., Migne, Patr. of Burgundy, which then extended from the
Lat. Ixxii. 795, 796 ; Greg. Tur. li. 32, 33 ;
Vosges to the Durance, and from the Alps to
Epitomata, xxii.-xxiv. ; Richter, Annalen, the Loire. Orleans was his nominal capital,
37, 38). About this time was held under his but his ordinary residence was at Chalon-sur-
presidency at Lyons a conference between the Saone (iv. 21, 22). His pacific and unenter-
by Avitus, and the Arians, led by
Catholics, led prising disposition made his reign uneventful.
Boniface. According to the Catholic account He died in 593, in the 33rd year of his reign,
of which survives, the heretics were utterly
it on Mar. 28, on which day the martyrologies
confounded. The narrative is in the Spicile- commemorate him as a saint, and was buried
gium, iii. 304 (Paris, 1723), Mansi, viii. 242, in the monastery church of St. Marcellus,
and excerpta from it in Patr. Lat. Ixxi. 11 54. his own foundation at Chalons.
Gundobald died in 516, leaving his son, the Though the church has canonized Guntram,
Catholic Sigismund, as his successor. it is perhaps doubtful whether his virtues
In spite of the unfavourable testimony of would stand out brightly on any other back-
Catholic writers, there are many indications ground than the utter darkness of Merovingian
that Gundobald was for his time an enlight- times. His chief merit seems to have been the
ened and humane king. The wisdom and avoidance of the terrible excesses which
equity of his government are evidenced by the characterized some of his family, and this was
Loi Gombette, the Burgundian code, called perhaps as much due to the feebleness of his
after him, which, though probably not taking nature as to any positive inclination towards
its present shape entirely till his son's reign, well-doing. Even his clerical eulogists admit
was enacted by him. Its provisions in favour that as regards women his morals were by no
of the Roman, or old Gallic inhabitants, whom means scrupulous (Almoin, iii. 3, Patr. Lat.
in most respects it put on an equality with cxxxix. 693). When provocation or panic was
the conquerors, entitles it to be called the absent he was mild, and even merciful, but on
best barbarian code which had yet appeared occasion he readily committed the barbarities
(Greg. Tur. ii. 33 Hist. lit. de la France, iii. of his age. The merest suspicion or accusation
;

83 sqq. ; L' Art de verifier les dates, x. 365, connected with his personal safety sufficed
Paris, 1 8 18). For the code see Bouquet, iv. to throw him into a panic, when torture was
257 seq., and Pertz, Leges, iii. 497 seq. freely applied to obtain confessions. Assas-
Though he professed Arianism, Gundobald sination was the haunting fear of his life, and
did not persecute, but secured the Catholics he always wore arms and continually strength-
in the possession of their endowments, as ened the escort which attended him every-
Avitus testifies {Ep. xxxix. Patr. Lat. lix. where, except in church (vii. 8, 18, viii. 11,
256). The circumstances relied on by 44). His apprehension at times was almost
Revillout (De V Arianisyne des peuples ger- comic. Gregory tells us that one Sunday at
maniques, 180, 181), who takes the opposite church in Paris, when the deacon had enjoined
view, are trivial, compared with the testimony silence for the mass, Guntram turned to the
of Avitus and the silence of Gregory. Gun- people and said, " I beseech you, men and
dobald's whole correspondence with Avitus women who are present, do not break your
BABIBUS HABIBUS 433

faith to me, but forbear to kill me as you the Basilian Menologimn, Nov. 15, with the
killed my
brothers. At least let me live three martyrs Gurias and Samonas, in whose tomb
years, that I may rear up tiie nephews whom he was laid at Dec. 2 he has a separate notice.
;

I have adopted, lest mayhap, which God for- Simeon Metaphrastes in his lengthened ac-
bid, you perish together with those little ones count of those two martyrs (the Lat. in Surius,
when I am dead, and there is no strong man de Prob. Hist. SS. Nov. 15, p. 342, the Lat. and
of our race to defend you " (vii. 8, cf. Michelet, Gk. in Patr. Gk. cxvi. 141) similarly embodies
Hist, de France, 1. 231, " Ce bon homme the history of Habib. Assemani notices him
semble charge de la partie comique dans le in his Bibl. Orient, (i. 330, 331) from Meta-
drame terrible de I'histoire merovingienne "). phrastes, but not in his Acta Martyrum. The
On the other hand, mere abstinence from original Syriac account of Habib which Meta-
wanton wrong-doing and aggression must be phrastes abridged has been discovered, and
counted for a virtue in his family and age. was ed. in 1864 by Dr. Wright with a trans,
For the crowning evil of the time, the incessant by Dr. Cureton (Ancient Syriac Documents,
civil wars which devastated France, he was p. 72, notes p. 187). The Syrian author,
in no way responsible. Though frequently in whose name was Theophilus, professes to
combat, it was always to repel the aggression have been an eyewitness of the martjTdom
of others, except in his Gothic wars, which he (which he places on Sept. 2) and a convert.
probably regarded as crusades against heretics. The ancient Syrian Martyrology, another
The profuse almsgiving which he practised discovery trans, by Dr. Wright (Journ. Sac.
Lit. 1866, p. 429), likewise commemorates
(e.g. vii. 40) shewed a real, if mistaken, desire
for the good of his subjects- Habib on Sept. 2. Theophilus says that
But was his warm friendship to the in the month Ab (i.e. Aug.) in the year 620
it
church and clergy which procured him the of the kingdom of Alexander of Macedon, in
rank of a saint. St. Benignus of Dijon, St. the consulate of Licinius and Constantine,
Symphorian of Autun, and St. Marcellus of in the days of Conon, bp. of Edessa, the
Chalon-sur-Saone were founded or enriched emperor commanded the altars of the gods
by him, and in the last he established and to be everywhere repaired, sacrifices and
provided for perpetual psalmody after the libations offered and incense burnt to Jupiter.
model of St. Sigismund's foundation at St. Habib, a deacon of the village of Telzeha,
Maurice (Fredegar. Chron. xv. Almoin, Hist. went privately among the churches and
;

Franc, iii. 81, Patr. Lat. cxxxix. 751). Bishops villages encouraging the Christians not to
were his constant advisers, and his favourite comply. The Christians were more numerous
solution of all complications was an episcopal than their persecutors, and word reached
council (Greg. Tur. v. 28; vii. 16; viii. 13, 20, Edessa that even Constantine " in Gaul and
27). He commended himself to them also by Spain " had become Christian and did not
his respect for church ceremonies and his sacrifice. Habib's proceedings were reported
frequent and regular attendance at religious to Licinius, who sentenced him to die by fire.
services, and especially by his freedom and When this news reached Edessa, Habib was
condescension in eating, drinking, and con- some 50 miles off at Zeugma, secretly encourag-
versing with them (vii. 29 ; viii. 1-7, 9, 10 ;
ing the Christians there, and his family and
ix. 3, 20, 21 ; X. 28). Gregory says, " You friends at Telzeha were arrested. Hereupon,
would have thought him a priest as well as a Habib went to Edessa and presented him-
king " (ix. 21). " With priests he was like a self privately to Theotecnus, the head of the
priest," says Fredegarius (Chron. i.), and " he governor's household. This ofiicial desired
shewed himself humble to the priests of to save Habib and pressed him to depart
Christ," says Aimoin (i(.5.). Chilperic once secretly, assuring him that his friends would
intercepted the letter of a bishop, in which it soon be released. Habib, believing that
was written that the transition from Guntram's cowardice would endanger his eternal salva-
sway to his was like passing from paradise tion, persisted in surrender, and was led before
to hell (Greg. Tur. vi. 22). In estimating the governor. On refusing to sacrifice, he was
Guntram's character, therefore, we must imprisoned, tortured, and then burned, after
always remember that our information he had at great length uncompromisingly
comes from this favoured class. Especially exposed the sin and folly of idolatry. The
does this apply to Gregory of Tours, who was day of his imprisonment was the emperor's
on very friendly terms with him (viii. 2-7, 13 ;
festival, and on the 2nd of Ilul (Sept.) he
ix. 20, 21), and who ascribes miracles to his suffered. His dying prayer was, " O king
sanctity during his lifetime (ix. 21 cf. too
;
Christ, for Thine is this world and Thine is the
Paulus Diaconus, de Gest. Langob. iii. 33, world to come, behold and see that while I
Migne, Patr. Lat. xcv. 535, and Aimoin. iii. 3, might have been able to flee from these
Patr. Lat. cxxxix. 693). There is extant an afflictions I did not flee, in order that I might
edict of Guntram addressed to the bishops and not fall into the hands of Thy justice. Let
judges commanding the observance of the therefore this fire in which I am to be burned
Sabbath and holy days, in conformity with be for a recompense before Thee, so that I may
be delivered from that fire which is not
j

the canon of the 2nd council of Macon. It is


dated Nov. 10, 585, and is in Mansi, ix. 962, [

quenched and receive Thou my spirit into


;

Thy presence through the Spirit of Thy God-


[

and Boll. Acta SS. Mar. iii. 720 cf. Hist. ;

head, O glorious Son of the adorable Father."


\

lit. de la France, iii.


369 seq.). [s.a.b.]
The year is given by Baronius, who had only
H Metaphrastes to guide him, as a.d. 316 (A. E.
ann. 316, xlviii.). Assemani (Bibl. Or. i. 331)
Habibus (2) (Abihris), deacon, martyr at with the same materials decides for 323. The
Edessa in the reign of Licinius mentioned in.
; details of Theophilus might seem to settle the
28
434 HADRIANUS, PUBLIUS AELIUS HADRIANUS, PUBLIUS AELIUS
point ;but if his era is that of the Seleucidae, met with studied indignity, and a plough was
Ilul 2, 620 was Sept. 2, 309, and Licinius drawn over the site of the sacred place in token
only became master of the East in 313. The of its desecration. The city was filled with
date therefore is still a difficulty. [c.h.] Roman emigrants, the Jews were forbidden to
Hadrian US (1), Publius Aelius, emperor enter the city, but allowed, as if in bitter
1 17-137. Born in 76, and placed, at the age irony, on the anniversary of its capture by
of ten, on his father's death, under the guar- Titus to bewail their fate within its gates.
dianship of his cousin, Ulpius Trajanus, after- On one of the gates a marble statue of the
wards emperor, Hadrian was in his youth a unclean beast was a direct insult to Jewish
diligent student of Greek literature, and feeling, while Christian feeling was outraged
entered on his career as military tribune in by a statue of Jupiter on the site of the
Lower Moesia in 95. On the death of Nerva resurrection and of Venus on that of the
in 97, Trajan became emperor, and Hadrian, crucifixion. Trees and statues were placed on
on whom he bestowed such favours that men the platform of the temple, and a grove to
looked for a formal adoption, served in the Adonis near the cave of the nativity at Beth-
wars with the Dacians, Pannonians, Sarma- lehem. Such persistent defiance of national
tians, and Parthians. During the campaign feeling roused widespread indignation, which
against the last-named, Trajan, leaving burst out under a leader whom we know by his
Hadrian in command of the army and of the assumed name of Bar-Cocheba ("the son of a
province of Syria, started for Rome, but died star") —^a name probably suggested bythe
at Selinus in Cilicia in 117. Hadrian had imagery of Balaam (Num.
xxiv. 17), possibly
himself proclaimed emperor by the army, also by the recollection of the " star in the
communicated the election to the senate, and east " of Matt. ii. 2. He is described by>>.
received their formal sanction. His external Eusebius {H. E. iv. 3) as a murderer and a
policy was marked by the abandonment of robber {(poviKos kuI XriarpiKos) of the Barab-
any idea of extending the eastern frontier of bas type, but was recognized by Akiba, the
the empire beyond the Euphrates. Having leading rabbi of the time, as the Messiah,
gained popular favour by gladiatorial games, seized 50 fortresses and 985 villages, and
large donations, and the remission of arrears established himself in the stronghold of
of taxes, Hadrian devoted himself for several Bethera, between Caesarea and Lydda (rebuilt
years from 120 to a personal inspection of the by Hadrian and renamed Diospolis). The
provinces. In 120-12 1 he visited Gaul, Ger- Christians of Palestine, true to the apostolic
many, and Britain, erecting fortresses and precept of submission to the powers that be,
strengthening the frontier defences, of which took no part in the insurrection, and were
an example is his Roman wall from the Solway accordingly persecuted by the rebel leader and
to the mouth of the Tyne. We
may find traces, offered the alternative of denying the Messiah-
perhaps, of the eclectic tendency of his mind ship of Jesus or the penalty of torture and
in the altars dedicated to Mithras and to an death {ib. iv. 8). Severus was recalled from
otherwise unknown goddess named Coventina Britain, the rebellion suppressed with a strong
or Conventina, found near the wall not far from hand, and edicts of extreme stringency issued
Hexham.* In 122 he came to Athens, which against the Jews, forbidding them to circum-
became his favourite residence, and the same cise their children, keep the Sabbath, or
eclectic tendency led him to seek initiation in educate their youth in the Law. Akiba died
the Eleusinian mysteries (a.d. 125). On the under torture, and a secret school for in-
death, probably self-sought, of his favourite struction in the Law, continuing the rabbinic
Antinous, a Bithynian page of great beauty traditions, was formed at Lydda(Jost, Juden-
and genius, Hadrian paid his memory the thum, ii. 7). To the Christian church in
divine honours given to emperors. Constella- Judaea the suppression of the revolt and the
tions were named after him, cities dedicated tolerant spirit of the emperor brought relief.
to him, incense burnt in his honour, and the They left Pella, where they had taken refuge
art market flooded with statues and busts during the siege of Jerusalem by Titus, and
representing his exceeding beauty. The returned to the holy city. Its 15 successive
apotheosis of Antinous was the reductio at once bishops had all been Hebrews, but now the
ad absurdum and ad horribile of the decayed mother-church of the world first came under
polytheism of the empire (Eus. H. E. iv. 8 ; the care of a gentile bishop (Eus. H. E.iv. 5).
Justin, Apol. i. 39). In 131 the emperor In his general treatment of Christians,
began to execute the plan, conceived earlier Hadrian followed in the footsteps of Trajan.
in his reign, of making Jerusalem a Roman The more cultivated members of the church
colonia, and rebuilding it as Aelia CapitoUna, felt that in addressing the tolerant, eclectic
thus commemorating both the gens to which emperor, " curiositatum omnium explorator,"
the emperor belonged and its consecration to as Tertullian calls him {Apol. c. 5), they had
the Capitolian Jupiter. At first the proposal a chance of a favourable hearing, and the age
was received tranquilly. The work of rebuild- of apologists began. Quadratus presented
ing was placed in the hands of a Jew, Aquila his Apologia, laying stress on the publicity of
of Pontus, and the Jews petitioned for per- the works of Christ, and appealing to still
mission to rebuild their temple. They were surviving eye-witnesses. Aristides ad-
See a paper by Mr. Clayton in the Transactions dressed to the emperor (a.d. 133) a treatise,
of the Nencastle Archaeological Society for 1875. extant and admired in the time of Jerome, in
Some archaeologists consider Conventina a Latinized defence of the Christians, and was said even
form of the name of some British goddess. The fact
that Hadrian when in Spain summoned a conventus to have been admitted to a personal hearing.
of all Romans resident there suggests that the
Early in his reign, but probably a little later,
goddess was perhaps the personified guardian of an Asiatic official of high character, Serenius
such a conventus held in Britain. Granianus, applied to Hadrian for instructions
— —

HADRIANUS, PUBLIUS AELIUS HEDIBIA 435


as to the treatment of Christians, complaining however, equally favourable to the growth of
that their enemies expected him to condemn heresy and to this reign we trace the rise and
;

them without a trial. The emperor thereupon growth of the chief Gnostic sects of the 2nd
addressed an official letter to Minucius Fun- cent., the followers of Saturninus in Syria, of
danus, proconsul of Asia, regulating the mode Basilides, Carpocrates, and Valentinus in
of procedure against the persecuted sect. No Egypt, of Marcion in Pontus (Eus. H. E.
encouragement was to be given to common iv. 7, 8). Cf., besides the authorities cited,
informers {crvKo4>di'Tai) or to popular clamour. Gibbon, Decline and Fall, c. iii. Milman,
;

If the officials of the district {ewapxn^rai) were Hist, of Christ, bk. ii. c. vi. Lardner, Jewish
;

confident that they could sustain a prosecu- and Heathen Testimonies, c. xi. [e.h.p.]
tion, the matter was to be investigated in due Hecebolius or Hecebolus, a rhetor at Con-
course. Offenders against the laws were to stantinople in the reign of Constantius, who
be punished but, above all things, the trade
;
professed himself a " fervent " Christian, and
of the informer was to be checked (Eus. H. E. was therefore selected by that emperor as one
iv. 8, 9). The character of Hadrian may be of the teachers of Julian (Socr. iii. i, 13).
inferred from his policy. He had not the zeal After the death of Constantius, however,
of a persecutor nor the fear that leads to Hecebolius followed the example of his former
cruelty. His philosophy and his religion did pupil and became a " fierce pagan " (-yop-fos
not keep him from the infamy of an impure "E\\y]v Socr. u.s. 13).
; He was in great favour
passion of the basest type. He adapted him- with Julian, and appears to have been one of
self without difficulty to the worship of the his familiar correspondents (Julian, Ep. 19,
place in which he was. At Rome he main- ed. Heyler, p. 23 ;'E/cTj/ioXa)), and seems to
tained the traditional sacred rites which had have had some civil office at Edessa. The
originated under the republic, and posed as the Arians of that city, " in the insolence of
patron of Epictetus and the Stoicism identified wealth," had violently attacked the Valen-
with his name. At Athens he was initiated tinians. Julian wrote to Hecebolius to say
in the Eleusinian mysteries, and rose to the that, " since they had done what could not
dignity of an Epoptes in the order, as one in be allowed in any well-governed city," " in
the circle of its most esoteric teaching. He order to help the men the more easily to enter
became an expert in the secrets of magic and "
the kingdom of heaven as it was prescribed
astrology. To him, as he says in his letter to by their " most wonderful law, he had com-
Servianus, the worshippers of Serapis and manded all moneys to be taken away from the
of Christ stood on the same footing. Rulers church of the Edessenes, that they might be
of synagogues, Christian bishops, Samaritan distributed among the soldiers, and that its
teachers, were all alike trading on the credulity property should be confiscated to his private
of the multitude (Flavius Vopiscus, Saturn. treasury that being poor they might become
;

cc. 7, 8). According to a later writer, Lam- wise and not lose the kingdom of heaven which
pridius (in Alex. Sev. c 43), his wide eclec- they hoped for" (Juhan, Ep. 43, ed. Heyler,
ticism led him at one time to erect temples p. 82 ; Baron, s.a. 362, xiii. ; Soz. vi. i).
without statues, which he intended to dedi- Such appropriation of church property was
cate to Christ. He was restrained, it was one of the crimes of which Julian was accused
reported, by oracles, which declared that, if after his death (Greg. Naz. adv. Jul. Oral. iii.).
this were done, all other temples would be de- The emperor adds that he had charged the
serted and the religion of the empire subverted. inhabitants of Edessa to abstain from " riot
But the absence of contemporary evidence of and strife," lest "they themselves" should
such an intention, on which Christian apolo- suffer " the sword, exile, and fire." The last
gists would naturally have lain stress, leads us sentence in the letter appears to intimate that
to reject Lampridius's explanation of these he would hold Hecebolius personally respon-
temples as an unauthenticated conjecture. sible for the future good conduct of the city.
More probably, as Casaubon suggests [Annot. After the death of Julian and the reversal of
in Lamprid. c. 43), they were intended ulti the imperial policy, Hecebolius ostentatiously
mately to be consecrated to Hadrian himself. professed extreme penitence for his apostasy

So the imperial Sophist the term is used of
Hadrian by Julian [Caemres, p. 28, ed. 1583)
and prostrated himself at the church door,
crying to all that entered, "Trample upon me
— passed through life, " holding no form of the salt that has lost its savour" (Socr. iii. 13 ;

creed and contemplating all," and the well- Baron. M.s. = Matt. v. 13). Baronius assumes
known lines the identity of the magistrate of Edessa with
" Animula, vagula, blandula, the " rhetor " of Constantinople [s.a. 362,
Hospes, comesque corporis. xiii. xiv.), but Tillemont regards them as
Quae nunc abibis in loca, different persons (Mem. vii. 331, 332). Liba-
Pallidula, rigida, nudula ? nius mentions a Hecebolius, but gives us no
Nee, ut soles, dabis jocos " [t.w.d.]
clue to his history (Ep. 309).
(Spartian. Vit. Hadr.)
Hedibia (Edibia), a lady Gaul, who
in
shew a like dilettanteism in him to the last. corresponded with St. Jerome (then at Beth-
A reign like that of Hadrian naturally, on lehem) c. 405. She was descended from the
the whole, favoured the growth of the church. Druids, and held the hereditary office of
The popular cry, " Christianos ad loenes," was priests of Belen (= Apollo) at Bayeux. Her
hushed. Apologetic literature was an appeal grandfather and father (if majores is to be
to the intellect and judgment of mankind. taken strictly) Patera and Delphidius (the
The frivolous eclecticism of the emperor and names being in each case derived from their
yet more his deification of Antinous were office) were remarkable men. Of Patera,
enough to shake the allegiance of serious Jerome savs in his Chronicle, under a.d. 339,
minds to the older system. Tolerance was, " Patera rhetor Romae gloriosissime docet."
436 HEGESIPPUS HEGESIPPUS
Delphidius was a writer in prose and verse and statement of Jerome, generally regarded as
a celebrated advocate. Ammianus Marcel- somewhat extravagant, that the life of Hege-
linus (xviii. i) tells of his pleading before the sippus had bordered on the apostolic age
emperor Julian. Both became professors at ("vicinus apostolicorum temporum," de Vir.
Bordeaux (Ausonius, Carmen, Prof. Burd. iv. III. c. 22). But there is no extravagance in
and v.). The wife and daughter of Delphidius the remark. \i Hegesippus was born c. 120
became entangled in the Zoroastrian teaching or earlier, he may well be described as having
of Priscillian, and suffered death in the per- lived near the times of St. John. We may,
secution of his followers (Sulp. Sev. Hist. Sac. therefore, fix the bloom of Hegesippus's life
ii. 63, 64; Prosper Aquit. Chron. ; Auson. about the middle of the 2nd cent.
Carmen, v.). Hedibia was a diligent His history embraced, so far as we may
student of Scripture, and, finding no one to judge from its fragments, numerous miscel-
assist her, sent, by her friend Apodemius, a laneous observations, recollections, and tra-
list of questions to J erome. He answered them ditions, jotted down without regard to order,
in a long letter (Ep. 120, ed. Vail.). We as they occurred to the author or came under
hear of her again as a friend of Artemia, wife his notice during his travels. Jerome tells us
of Rusticus, on whose account she again wrote that the work contained the events of the
to Jerome (Ep. 122, ed. Vail.). [w.h.f.] church from Palestine to Rome, and from the
Hegesippus (1), commonly known as the death of Christ to the writer's own day. It is
father of church history, although his works, not a regular history of the church, Weiz-
except a few fragments which will be found in sacker well remarking that, in that case, the
Routh [Rel. Sacr. i. pp. 207-219) and in Grabe story of James the Just ought to have been
(Spicil. ii. 203-214), have perished. Nothing found in the first book, not in the last.
positive is known of his birth or early circum- Its general style was thought plain and
stances. From his use of the Gospel according unpretending, says Jerome, and with this
to the Hebrews, written in the Syro-Chaldaic description what remains sufficiently agrees.
language of Palestine, his insertion in his The question of its trustworthiness is of
history of words in the Hebrew dialect, and greater moment. The account given in it
his mention of unwritten traditions of the of James the head of the church in Jeru-
Jews, Eusebius infers that he was a Hebrew salem has led to many charges against Hege-
(//. E. iv. 22), but possibly, as conjectured by sippus of not having been careful enough to
Weizsacker (Herzog, Encyc. v. 647), Eusebius prove what he relates. He has been thought
knew this as a fact from other sources to be contradicted by Josephus, who tells
also. We owe our only information as to his us that " Ananus, the high-priest, assem-
date to a statement of his own, preserved bled the Sanhedrin of judges, and brought
by Eusebius (iv. 22), which is understood to before them the brother of Jesus Who was
mean that at Rome he compiled a succession of called Christ, whose name was James, and
the bishops of the Roman see to the time of some others. And, when he had formed an
Anicetus, whose deacon was Eleutherus. After accusation against them, he delivered them
this statement Hegesippus is represented as to be stoned " (Ant. xx. 9, i). We may be
adding, " and to Anicetus succeeds Soter, after permitted to doubt, however, whether the
whom Eleutherus." Much as the interpreta- sentence thus referred to was carried out, for
tion of these words has been disputed, it does not only was it unlawful for the Sanhedrin to
not seem difficult to gather that Hegesippus punish by death without consent of the Roman
means that the list of bishops compiled by authorities, but Josephus informs us imme-
him at Rome was drawn from the authentic diately after that the charge of the citizens
records of the church there. That list closed against Ananus was, that it was not lawful for
with Anicetus. He was afterwards able to him to assemble a Sanhedrin without the
add the names of Soter and Eleutherus. It procurator's assent, nothing being said of
thus appears that he was at Rome in the days the stoning to death. Further, Eusebius,
of Anicetus and made his inquiries then, but who has preserved the narrative of Hegesippus,
did not publish them till considerably later. and the early Fathers who allude to it, appear
But Anicetus, according to Lipsius (Chrono- to have placed in it implicit confidence and ;

logie der romischen Bischofe), was bp. of Rome there is nothing improbable in most, if not
156-167, and Eleutherus 175-189. Hegesip- even in all, of the particulars mentioned.
pus had thus written much of his history Eusebius speaks of him in the most commend-
previous to a.d. 167, and published it in the atory terms, and quotes him on numerous
time of Eleutherus, perhaps early in his occasions (see H. E. ii. 23 iii. ir, 16, 20, 32
; ;

episcopate. Any difficulty in accepting these iv. 8, II, 22), illustrating his own words in iv.
dates has been occasioned by the rendering 8, irXeiarais Kfxprfixeda (puivais. Such con-
given to another passage of Eusebius (iv. 8), fidence appears to have been deserved. Hege-
where he quotes Hegesippus as speaking of sippus had an inquiring mind, and had
certain games (ayihv) instituted in honour of travelled much ;he endeavoured to learn all
Antinous, a slave of Hadrian, of which he he could of the past and present state of the
says 60' i)ixGiv yevdinevos (a better established churches that he visited :at Corinth the first
reading than yivdixevos). But these words epistle of Clement excited his curiosity at;

seem simply to mean that the games had been Rome the history of its early bishops. All
instituted in his own time, thus illustrating this, and his unpretending and unexaggerated
the fj.(xpi- vvv of the preceding sentence. style, shows him as very far from being either
Hadrian reigned 1 17-138, so that if Hegesippus a liasty observer or a credulous chronicler.
published c. 180, being then well advanced in An important question remains Was :

life, he might well remember the times of that Hegesippus of the Judaizing Christian party ?
emperor. This derives confirmation from a Baur looks upon him as representing the
HEGESIPPUS HELENA 437
narrowest section of the Jewish Christians, such, appeared c. 400, and is commonly
even as a most declared enemy of St. Paul, referred to as de Bello Judaico or as de
travelling like a commissioned agent in the Excidio Urbis Hierosolymitanae. It is mainly
interests of the Judaizers {K. G. i. p. 84 so;
taken from the Wars of Josephus. The
also Schwegler, Nachap. Zeit, i. p. 342, etc.). translator freely adds to his author, sometimes
This view is founded mainly upon an extract from the later books of the Antiquities of
from his works, preserved in Photius (see in Josephus, sometimes from Roman historians
Routh, R. S. i. p. 219), where Hegesippus and other sources, and also freely composes
comments on the words, " Eye hath not seen, speeches tor the actors.
nor ear heard, neither have entered into the The work is that of an earnest defender of
heart of man the things which God hath the Christian faith. An approximation to
prepared for the just," " Such words are his date is supphed by several passages as ;

spoken in vain, and those who use them lie when he speaks of Constantinople having long
against the Holy Scriptures and the Lord become the second city of the Roman empire
Who says, Blessed are your eyes for they see,
'
(iii. 5, p. 179), and of Antioch, once the metro-

and your ears for they hear.' " It is argued polis of the Persians, being in his time the
that Hegesippus is here directly attacking defence of the Byzantines against that people.
St. Paul's words in I. Cor. ii. 9 ; and the infer- He also speaks of the triumphs of the Romans
ence is that Hegesippus was keenly Judaic. in " .Scotia " and in " Saxonia," using lan-
We know that the Gnostics were in the habit guage strikingly similar to that of Claudian
of so using the words in question, and that they (c. 398) (v. 18, p. 299 Claud, de iv. Cons.
;

described by means of them the very essence Honor. 31-34)- The work early acquired
of that spiritual insight which the neophyte a considerable reputation. Some have as-
who had just sworn the oath of allegiance to cribed the translation to Ambrose. The
them received, " And when he [i.e. he who is Benedictines, however, strongly reject the
about to be initiated] has sworn this oath, he Ambrosian authorship, asserting that it con-
goes on to the Good One, and beholds what- '
tains nothing whatever in Ambrose's style ;

ever things eye hath not seen, and ear hath not while Galland earnestly contends for it, and
heard, and which have not entered into the reprints an elaborate dissertation of Mazochius
heart of man" (Hippolytus, Ref. of all Heresies, which he regards as conclusive (Galland.
i. p. 193, T. & T. Clark). It is much the Biblioth. Patr. vii. prolegom. p. xxix.). The
more probable inference, therefore, that Hege- editors of the Patrologia incline to reject the
sippus refers to this Gnostic misinterpretation Ambrosian authorship, though they print it
of the words and not to St. Paul (cf. Routh, among his writings (xv. 1962). The most
R. S. i. p. 281 ; Ritschl, Die Entstehung der correct edition (Marburg, 1858, 1864, 4to) was
Altk. Kirche, p. 267; Hilgenfeld, Die Apost. commenced by Prof. C. F. Weljer of Marburg,
Vdter, p. 102). Further, Hegesippus must and completed after his death by Prof. Julius
have known that Clement, whose epistle he Caesar, who elaborately discussed the author-
approved, quotes in c. xxxiv., for a purpose ship and date (pp. 389-399). Cf. G. Landgraf,
precisely similar to that of the apostle, the "Die Hegesippus Frage" in Archiv. f. Latin
very passage in question, though with a slight Lexicogr. (1902), xii. 465-472, who decides in
variation in the words. How, then, can he favour of the Ambrosian authorship, [t.w.d.]
have held the contrary opinion as to the use Helena (1), said to have been the companion
made of it by St. Paul ? It is obviously a of Simon Magus. According to Justin
particular application of the passage, different Martyr (Apol. i. 26) and Irenaeus (i. 23, p.
from that of the apostle, that he has in view. 99), who possibly makes use of a lost work of
In the light of these considerations, Justin's, she was a prostitute whom Simon
Hegesippus appears to have been not a had purchased from a brothel at T>Te and
Judaizing but a Catholic Christian; and, if led about, holding her up to the veneration of
so, he becomes a witness not only for- the his disciples. Giving himself out to be the
catholicity in the main of the Christian church Supreme Power and the Father above all, he
of the 2nd cent., but for the extent to which taught, says Irenaeus, that " she was the first
Catholic truth prevailed in it, for his evidence, conception of his mind, the mother of all
whatever its purport, has reference to the things, by whom in the beginning he conceived
condition of the church upon a large scale. the thought of making the angels and arch-
Either, therefore, over this wide extent the angels ; for that this Conception proceeded
church was as a whole marked by a narrow forth from him and, knowing her father's
Judaic spirit, or over the same wide extent it wishes, descended to the lower world, and
was catholic in spirit, with heretical sects produced the angels and powers, by whom
struggling to corrupt its faith. If our verdict also he said that this world was made. But
be in favour of the latter view, it becomes after she had produced them, she was detained
impossible to look at Hegesippus in the light by them through envy and. confined
. . . . .

in which he has been presented by the Tiibin- in a human body, and for ages passed into
gen school. We must regard him as a Cath- other female bodies, as if from one vessel into
olic, not as a Judaizing Christian, and his another. He said, also, that she was that
statements as to the condition of the church Helen on account of whom the Trojan war
in his day become a powerful argument was fought ; . that after passing from one
. .

against, rather than in favour of, the conclu- body to another, and constantly meeting with
sions of that school. Cf Zahn, Forschungen. insult, at last she became a public prostitute,
igoo, vi. 228-27^. [w.M.] and that she was the lost sheep.' On this
'

Hegesippus (2) (Egesippus), the alleged account he had come that he might first of all
author of a work of which a translation from reclaim her and free her from her chains, and
Greek into Latin, or what purported to be then give salvation to men through the know-
438 HELENA HELENA
ledge of himself." The same storytold by
is 308) that Justin in his account of the honours
Hippolytus (Ref. vi. 19, p. 174), Tertullian paid at Samaria to Simon and Helena may
(de Antrna, 34), Epiphanius (Haer. 21), have been misled by the honours there paid
Philaster (Haer. 29), Theodoret (Haer. Fab. i. to Phoenician sun and moon divinities of
i). Tertullian evidently knows no more than similar names. On this and other cognate
he read in Irenaeus but Hippolytus, who
; questions see Simon. Suffice it here to say
had read the MeydXr] 'A-rrocpdais, gives some that one strong fact in support of his theory,
additional particulars, e.g. that Simon allegor- viz. that in the Clementine Recognitions (ii. 14,
ized the story of the wooden horse and of preserved in the Latin of Rufinus) the com-
Helen and her torch. The wooden horse must panion of Simon is called Luna, may have
also have been mentioned in the earlier treatise originated in an early error of transcription.
against heresies, used by Epiphanius and She is Helena in the corresponding passage
Philaster, both of whom state that Simon of the Clementine Homilies, ii. 23 and we find
;

expounded it as representing the ignorance elsewhere the false reading Selene for Helene,
of the nations. Epiphanius, then, it may be e.g. in Augustine (de Haer. 1). [g.s.]
believed, did not invent some other particu- Helena (2), St., or Flavia Julia Helena
lars, in which he differs from or goes be- Augusta, first wife of Constantius Chlorus,
yond Irenaeus. He states that Simon called and mother of Constantine the Great, born
this conception (Ennoea) Prunicus and Holy c. 248, died c. 327.

Spirit; and he gives a different account, in Little is known for certain of her life, except
some respects, of the reasons for her descent that she was mother of Constantine the Great
into the lower world. According to this and when about 80 years old undertook a
account, she was sent in order to rob the remarkable pilgrimage to Palestine, which
Archons, the framers of this world, of their resulted in the adornment and increased
power, by enticing them to desire her beauty, veneration of the holy places.
and setting them in hostility to one another. She was doubtless of humble parentage,
The honour paid to Helena by the followers being, according to one story, the daughter
of Simon was known to Celsus, who says (v. 62) of an innkeeper (Anon. Valesii 2, 2, " matre
that certain Simonians were also called vilissima," Ambrose, de Obitu Theodosii,
Heleniani, from Helena, or else from a teacher § 42, p. 295). Constantius when he made her
Helenus. We are told also by Irenaeus and acquaintance was a young ofiicpr in the army,
Hippolytus that the Simonians had images of of good family and position, nearly related,
Simon as Jupiter and of Helen as Minerva, by the female line, to the emperor Claudius,
which they honoured, calling the former lord, and appears to have at first united her to
the latter lady. This adaptation of the myth himself by the looser tie then customary
of Athene springing from the head of Zeus to between persons of such different conditions
the alleged relation of Ennoea to the first (Hieron. Chron. anno. 2322 Orosius, vii. 25
;
;

Father is of a piece with the appropriation of Chron. Pasch. a.d. 304, vol. i. p. 516, ed.
other Grecian myths by these heretics. Bonn Zos. ii. 8). The relation of " concu-
;

The doctrine thus attributed to Simon has binatus " might be a lifelong one and did not
close affinity with that of other Gnostic necessarily imply immorality. In outward
systems, more especially that of the Ophites, appearance it differed nothing from the
described at the end of bk. i. of Irenaeus, ordinary civil marriage by mutual consent,
except that in the Simonian system one and was sometimes called " conjugium in-
female personage fills parts which in other aequale." Her son Constantine, apparently
systems are distributed among more than one. her only child, was born probably in 274, at
But in several systems we have the association Naissus in Dardania, the country where his
with the First Cause of a female principle, his father's family had for some time been settled.
thought or conception ; and we have the After his birth Constantius probably advanced
myth of the descent of a Sophia into the lower Helena to the position of a lawful wife. That
material regions, her sufferings from the hos- she had this position is expressly stated by
tility of the powers who rule there, her some of our authorities, but the very emphasis
struggles with them, and her ultimate re- of their assertion implies that there was some-
demption. Peculiar to Simon is his doctrine thing peculiar about the case (Eus. H. E. viii.
of the transmigration of souls and his identi- 13, 12, 7rai5a yvrjcriov . KaraKiwuiv and the
. .

fication, by means of it, of himself and his inscription from Salerno given below). Respect
female companion with the two principal for Constantine would naturally prevent
personages of the Gnostic mythology. Simon, writers in his reign from stating the circum-
moreover, persuaded his followers not only to stances in detail. It may be, however, that
condone his connexion with a degraded person, his law to legitimatize the children of a
but to accept the fact of her degradation fully concubine " per subsequens matrimonium "
admitted as only a greater proof of his re- was suggested by his mother's experience.
demptive power. We find it easier to believe, After living with Constantius some 20 years
therefore, that the story had a foundation in Helena was divorced on the occasion of his
fact than that it was imagined without any. elevation to the dignity of Caesar in 292 ; the
On the other hand, it does not seem likely Augustus Maximian, in choosing him for his
that Simon could have been the first Gnostic, colleague, requiring this, as a matter of policy,
it being more credible that he turned to his in order that Constantius might marry his
account a mythology already current than own step-daughter, Theodora (Eutrop. Brev.
that he could have obtained acceptance for ix. 22 Victor, de Caesaribus, 39
; Epitome, ;

his tale of Ennoea, if invented for the first 54) —


a proceeding which has parallels in
time for his own justification. Roman history. The looseness of the marriage
Baur has suggested (ChristUche Gnosis, p. tie among the Romans is a quite sufficient
: —

HELENA HELENA 439


explanation of these acts, without supposing from exile {ib. 44). She was a frequent atten-
any offence or misconduct on the part of the dant at the church services, and adorned the
wife, or any special heartlessness on that of buildings with costly offerings {ib. 45). Her
the husband. We know nothing of her life death cannot have been earlier than 327,
during the remainder of her husband's reign. because she did not make her pilgrimage until
When Constantine succeeded in 306, he prob- after the death of Crispus. Tillemont puts it
ably recalled his mother to the court, but in 328, and it may have been later. (See
direct proof of this is wanting. We have further, Clinton, F. R. ii. 80, 81.) Her body
a coin stamped helena. n.f. i.e. nobilissima was carried with great pomp to " the imperial
femina, with a head on one side and a star in a city," i.e. probably, Constantinople (Eus.
laurel crown upon the other, perhaps struck in V. C. iii. 47 Socr.
; i. 17, thus glosses the
her honour whilst Constantine was still Caesar. phrase els rrjp ^acnXevovcroLi' vlav Pdi/xrjv).
The statement of Eusebius that Constantine It was believed, however, in the West that she
paid his mother great honours, and caused her was buried at Rome, and there is a tradition
to be proclaimed Augusta to all the troops, and that in 480 her body was stolen thence by a
struck her image on gold coins, is no doubt monk Theogisus and brought to Hautvilliers
correct, but is unfortunately unaccompanied in the diocese of Rheims. Others say that
by dates (Fj'/a Const, iii. 47). Silver and copper it is still in the porphyry vase in the church
coins are found with the name Flavia Helena of AraCoeli (Tillem. Mem. t. vii. n. 7). The
Augusta, struck in her lifetime. Others with place too of her death is strangely uncertain.
the remarkable epigraph Fl. Jul. Helenae Aug. Eusebius's silence would imply that she died
were struck at Constantinople and Treves as in Palestine but if the traditions of her
;

memorials after her death, and Theodora was bounty to the people and church of Cyprus
also similarly commemorated, to mark the on her way home are of any value, it must
reconciliation of the two branches of the have been somewhere nearer Rome or Con-
family. Helena is styled Augusta in inscrip- stantinople. These traditions may be seen in
tions, but in none necessarily earlier than 320 M. de Mas Letrie's Hist, de Vile de Chypre
(Mommsen, Inscr. Neap. 106, given below ;
sous les Lusignan (Paris, 1852-1861) Church ;

Inscr. Urhis Romae, C. I. L. v. 1134-1136). Qtly. Rev. vol. vii. pp. 186 f. [j-w.]
Eusebius also tells us that through Con- Invention of the Cross. — It is in connexion
stantine she became a Christian {V. C. iii. 57), with this famous story that the name of
and is supported (whatever the support may Helena is especially interesting to the student
be worth) by the probably spurious letters of church history. Its truth has been much
preserved in the Acts of St. Silvester. [Con- discussed, and we will briefly summarize the
stantine.] We must therefore reject the evidence of the ancient authorities.
story which ascribes his conversion to his (i) In the very interesting itinerary of the
mother's influence (Theod. i. 18, and the late anonymous Pilgrim from Bordeaux to Jeru-
and fabulous Eutychius Alexandrinus, pp. salem, generally referred to a.d. 333, seven
408, 456, ed. Oxon.). years after the date assigned to the finding of
The following inscription from Salerno the cross (Migne, Patr. Lat. xiii. 771), we have
marks the power of Helena in her son's court a description of the city, and many traditional
" To our sovereign lady Flavia Augusta sites of events both in O. and N. T. are men-
Helena, the most chaste wife of the divine tioned. Among these are the house of
Constantius, the mother of our Lord Con- Caiaphas with the pillar at which our Lord
stantine, the greatest, most pious and vic- was scourged, the praetorium of Pontius
torious Augustus, the grandmother of our Pilate, the little hill (monticulus) of Golgotha,
Lords Crispus and Constantine and Constan- and, a stone's throw from it, the cave of the
tius, the most blessed and fortunate Caesars, resurrection. On the latter spot a beautiful
this is erected by Alpinius Magnus, vir claris- basilica erected by Constantine is noticed, as
simus, corrector of Lucania and Bruttii, de- also on Mount Olivet and at Bethlehem. Yet
voted to her excellence and piety " (Mommsen, there is no allusion to the cross, nor is the
U.S. Orell. 1074, Wilmanns 1079). name of Helena mentioned.
In 326 Crispus was put to death on an (2) The Life of Constantine by Eusebius was
obscure charge by his father's orders. Tra- written probably in 338, five years after the
dition attributes this dark act to Fausta; and visit of the Bordeaux Pilgrim. He records the
Helena's bitter complaints about her grand- visit of Helena to Jerusalem, but does not
son's death are said to have irritated Constan- connect her name with the place of Crucifixion
tine to execute his wife by way of retribution nor with the Holy Sepulchre. He tells us
(Vict. Epit. 41, Fausta conjuge ut putant sug- that Constantine built a house of prayer on
gerente Crispum filium necari jussit. Dehine the site of the Resurrection and beautified the
uxorem suam Faustam in balneas ardentes caves connected with our Lord's Birth and
conjectam interemit, cum eum mater Helena Ascension, and that he did so in memory of
dolore nimie nepotis increparet). his mother, who had built two churches, one
Eusebius speaks strongly of her youthful at Bethlehem, the other on the Mount of
spirit when she, in fulfilment of a vow, made Ascension. Thus of the three famous caves,
her pilgrimage to the Holy Land, notwith- Eusebius connects Helena not with that of the
standing her great age, nearly 80 years (F. C. Resurrection, but only with the other two.
iii. 42, cf. 46). She received almost un- He indeed says that these were not the only
limited supplies of money from her son and churches she built, but it is hardly conceiv-
spent it in royal charities to the poor and able that he should have left the one on the
bounties to the soldiery as well as using her
; site of the Resurrection unspecified. The
power to free prisoners and criminals con- original motive of her journey, he says, was
demned to the mines and to recall persons to return thanks to God for His peculiar
440 HELENA HELENA
supernatural help. Three crosses were dis-
mercies to her family and to inquire as to the
covered, and the right one ascertained by the
welfare of the people of the country. His
miraculous restoration to life of a dead body
account of the discovery of the Holy Sepulchre
(Hist. Sacr. i. 33, Patr. Gk. xx. 148).
by Constantine is not free from difficulty. It
represents its (6) St. Ambrose, writing in 395, says that
is not easy to sav whether he
discovery as being before or after the death of
Helena was inspired by the Spirit with the
general, but the pre- desire to search for the cross, that she dis-
Helena. His language is
tinguished the true cross by its title (thus
sumption is that, if it had been before, her name
would have been connected with the event. differing from Sulpicius and all later writers),
that two of the nails were used by the emperor,
He does not imply that any difficulty was ex- one being fixed in his crown and the other
perienced in finding the site of the tomb, but
there is nothing as to the cross. All his words
employed as a bit for his bridle {de Obitu
Theodosii, c. 41 ff., Patr. Gk. xvi. 1399).'
bear upon the Resurrection, not the Passion,
of our Lord. But in Constantine's letter to (7) Rufinus (writing in 400, according to the
Life in Migne's ed.) tells us further that not
Macarius, bp. of Jerusalem, which he inserts,
only was the journey inspired by God, but
there are one or two expressions of which the
that the place of the Passion was miraculously
same cannot be said. Allowing for the excesses
revealed that the three crosses were found
of hyperbolical language, it is still hard to ;

" confuso ordine," and the title separately


understand the words, " When the cave was ;

that the true cross was discovered by the


opened, the sight which met the eyes ex-
celled all possible eulogy, as much as heavenly
miraculous healing of a sick lady (not the
revival of a corpse, as above) that part of the
things excel earthly," unless some kind of ;

memorial other than the tomb itself was wood was sent to Constantine, and part left at
discovered ; and immediately afterwards we Jerusalem in a silver casket (cf. MfXP' a-vM-^pof
have two expressions referring definitely to <t>aiv6fj.€vov in Cyril's description above).
our Lord's Passion. The first is, to yd.p [H. E. i. 7, 8, Patr. Gk. xxi. 475-)
Paulinus of Nola, writing (c. 403) to
yvihpLcr fia toO ayniiraTOV eKUvov xaOovs vnb
tt, (8)

and the second, acp' oii Sulpicius Severus, and sending him a piece, as
777 TrdXat KpvnTOfJ.euoi'
;

eh 4>u>s he says, of the true cross brought from Jeru-


(since) tov awTvpiov irdOov^ iriffTLV
salem by Benedicta Melanius, adds an account
TrpoTjyayev (sc. the tomb). At the same time
of its original discovery, because, as he says, it
it is difficult to believe that, had the
cross or
is so difficult to credit. He says that Helena
any part of it been discovered, it should not went to rescue the holy places, adorned the site
have been more exactly described, and the of our Lord's Birth in addition to the other
most probable explanation is that Trddos is three sites, and discovered the place of the
used to describe the whole scene of Redemp- Passion by the concurrent testimony of many
tion, of which the Resurrection was a part Jews and Christians in the city. He adds
(Eus. Vit. Const, iii. 26-42, Patr.Gk. xx. 1086). that, though pieces were frequently taken from
That the place was very early venerated is the cross, its original bulk was miraculously
proved by Eusebius's statement [Conim. on preserved (Ep. xxxi. 4, Patr. Gk. Ixi. 325).
Ps. Ixxxvii. 18) that marvels (davixaTo) were
(9) St. Jerome, in his Comm. on Zech.
xiv.
even then wrought at the tomb of Christ. 20 (Pair. Lat. xxv. 1540), probably written
(3) Cyril of Jerusalem,
whose catechetical A.D. 406, mentions the nail from the cross
lectures were delivered, he says, upon the very which was used for the emperor's bridle,
spot where our Lord was crucified, and, as we as related in many other writers, and in Ep.
know from other sources, not more than 20 Iviii. (ib. xxii. 581) speaks of the images of
years after the alleged discovery (viz. in 346), Jove and Venus which stood until the time of
has three allusions to the wood of the cross Constantine on the sites of the Resurrection
(iv. 10, X. 19, xiii. 4). The most definite is in and of the Passion respectively.
X. 19, where he describes it as
" until to-day
(10) St. Cyril of Alexandria (c. 420) men-
visibleamongst us" (wexp' <TVfJ.epov vap' yjfuv tions as a report (4>a<Ti) that the wood of the
" and now filling nearly the
(paivofxtvov), cross had been found at different times (xara
whole world by means of those who in faith Kaipous) with the nails still fixed in it (Comm.
take from it." In his letter to Constantius, on Zech. xiv. 20, Patr. Gk. Ixxii. 271).
which, however, is of doubtful authenticity
(11) Socrates (c. 430) informs us that Helena
[Cyril], it is distinctly stated that the cross was told in a night vision to go to Jerusalem ;

was discovered in the reign of Constantine that she found the site of the Passion with
(c. 3). The first quotations prove that it was difficulty, though he alludes to no supernatural
believed in his day that the real wood of our aid ; that Macarius suggested the means of
Lord's cross had been discovered, but do not distinguishing the true cross, viz. by applying
give the grounds of the belief. Nor, though it to a woman on the point of death ; that the
he speaks of the cross, does he connect it with empress erected " new Jerusalem " on the site
St. Helena. Thus none of our three earliest (a phrase evidently taken from Eusebius) ; and
authorities speak of her as the discoverer. that the emperor put one of the nails on his
(4) St. Chrysostom, writing probably before statue at Constantinople, as many inhabitants
387, speaks of the wood of the true cross (Pair. testified (H. E. i. 17, Patr. Gk. Ixvii. 118).
Gk. xlviii. 826). (12) Sozomen (c. 430) claims good authority
(5) Sulpicius Severus {c. 395) tells us that for his account, and states that Constantine,
Helena built three basilicas (not two, as in in gratitude for the council of Nicaea, wished
Eusebius), one on each of the sites of the to build a church on Golgotha ; that Helena
Passion, Resurrection, and Ascension. The about the same time went to Palestine to pray
site of the Passion, he says, was discovered by and to look for the sacred sites. He does not,
Helena, but he does not add that it was by however, mention any divine impulse. The

HELIODORUS HELLADIUS 441


difficulty of discovery was caused, he says, by Antioch. Heliodorus went on to Jerusalem,
the Greeks having defiled them to stop the where he enjoyed the hospitality of Florentius,
growing 6p-q<TK{ia the site of the Sepulchre
; who, having devoted himself to the ascetic
was made known, as some say, by a Hebrew life, employed his wealth in the entertainment
living in the East, from documentary evidence, of pilgrims (Hieron. Ep. iv. ed. Vail.). Re-
but more probably by signs and dreams from turning to Antioch, he found Jerome resolved
God. He says that the crosses were found to go into the solitude of the desert of Chalcis.
near the same spot {irepcofiL wepi riv avTov Heliodorus felt that he himself had a call to
rbTTov] as they had been left by the soldiers in the pastoral life, having a sister and a nephew
confused order, the inscription still remaining dependent on him (Hieron. Ep. Ix. 9, ed. Vail.).
on the tablet. He mentions two miracles :
He therefore returned to his native Aquileia,
the healing of a woman with an incurable holding out to his friend some hopes that
disease and the raising of a corpse, combining he might rejoin him one day in the desert
the other accounts; and adds that the greater (ib.). Jerome wrote to him on his return to
part of the cross was still preserved at Jeru- Italy a letter, reproaching him for turning
salem {H. E. ii. I, 2, Patr. Gk. Ixvii. 929). back from the more perfect service, which
(13) Theodoret (c. 448) inserts the letter of
afterwards had a great effect in furthering
Constantine to Macarius, and follows the order asceticism and became so celebrated that a
of Eusebius, representing, however, Helena's Roman lady, Fabiola, knew it by heart
journey, more definitely than Eusebius does, as (Hieron. Ep. Ixxvii. 9, ed. Vail. Ep. xiv. 11).
;

consequent upon the finding of the Sepulchre But their friendship was never broken. He-
by Constantine. But his account seems incon- liodorus continued in the pastoral ofiice, and
sistent. The crosses, he says, were found near not long afterwards became bp. of Altinum.
the Lord's tomb wapa rb p-vrj/na to ^eairoTtKov He was present in 381 as a bishop at the council
{H. E. i. 16, 17, Patr. Gk. Ixxxii. 955).
of Aquileia. In after-years he was closely
allied with Chromatius, bp. of Aquileia, and
(14) St. Leo (454), in writing to Juvenal, bp.
of Jerusalem, speaks of the constant witness they both kept up communications with
borne at Jerusalem to the reality of Christ's Jerome, then residing at Bethlehem. They
Passion by the existence of the cross {Ep. took a warm interest in Jerome's translation
cxxxix. 2, Patr. 1106).
liv. of the Scriptures, and frequently wrote to
(15) St. Gregory of Tours fd. 595) adds that
him, exhorting him to complete the long-
discovery was made on May 3, 326; that, delayed work. They supported amanuenses
during a great storm which occurred soon after, to assist him and by the grateful mention of
;

Helena put one of the nails into the sea, which their aid in the prefaces to the books last
was at once calmed that two more were used
;
translated, their names are for ever associated
for the emperor's bridle, and the fourth placed with the great work of the Vulgate (" Pre-
on the head of his statue that the lance,
;
face to the Books of Solomon and to Tobit,"
crown of thorns, and pillar of scourging were Jerome's Works, vol. ix. 1305, x. 26 Migne's ;

preserved and worked miracles {Lib. Mirac. i. ed. of Vallarsi's Jerome). Cappelletti {Le
5, Patr. Lat. Ixxi. 709), and the cross found by
Chiese d'ltalia, v. 516, 610) reckons his suc-
the aid of a Jew, afterwards baptized as Quiri- cessor in the see of Altinum to have been
acus (Hist. Franc, i. 34, Patr. Lat. Ixxi. 179). Ambrosius, a.d. 407. [w.h.f.]
Thus no detailed story is found until nearly Helladius (4), bp. of Tarsus c. 430, a disciple
70 years after the event, and then in the West of St. Theodosius of Antioch, after whose
only. The vagueness of St. Cyril of Alex- death (c. 412) he presided over the monastery
andria is particularly observable. Small differ- he had founded near Rhosus in Cilicia. Having
ences of detail occur the last author cited
;
spent 60 years in monastic life, he succeeded
adds several particulars not included in the Marianus, bp. of the metropolitan see of
other accounts, and there are features in the Tarsus (Theod. Vit. Patr. c. 10). His episco-
story which look like invention or exaggera- pate illustrates the stormy period of the
tion. On the whole, considering that our council of Ephesus. He was one of those who
earliest authorities do not represent Helena protested against commencing the council
as the discoverer and that the story gradually before the arrival of John of Antioch and the
develops, it seems probable that she had no Oriental bishops (Baluz. Nov. Concil. Coll.
part in the discovery of the cross, even if it p. 697), and he joined the opposition council
took place, which itself seems exceedingly {conciliabulum) presided over by John upon
doubtful. That the site of the Holy Sepulchre his arrival. He supported the counter-remon-
was discovered, or supposed to be discovered, strances addressed to the emperors by Nes-
in the reign of Constantine, there seems every torius [ib. 703), and his name is appended to
reason to believe and it is easy to understand
; the synodal letter to the clergy and laity of
how marvels would grow up around it. [m.f.a.] Hierapolis (ib. 705) and to that to John of
Heliodorus (7), bp. of Altinum near Aquileia, Antioch and Theodoret and the other mem-
c. 400, had served originally as a soldier, but bers of the Oriental deputation to Theodosius
had been ordained before we first hear of him. (ib. 725). Helladius steadily ignored the de-
He belonged to a band of friends drawn to- position of Nestorius and withheld all recog-
gether at Aquileia, c. 372, for the study of nition of Maximian as his successor. John of
Scripture and the practice of asceticism, which Antioch wrote, commending his action (ib. 752,
included St. Jerome, Evagrius afterwards bp. c. 48). When the rival leaders sought peace,
of Antioch, Rufinus, Bonosus, and Chromatins Helladius kept aloof, and on the receipt of the
afterwards bp. of Aquileia. The passion for six articles drawn up by John at a council
asceticism and the troubles which arose about at Antioch, which ultimately opened the way
Jerome made the companions resolve, under for reconcilation, he and Alexander of
the guidance of Evagrius, to go to Syria and Hierapolis rejected the terms and all com-
442 HELLADIUS HELVIDIUS
munion with Cyril. He wrote to Alexander laid upon him, and that he hoped he might
that, wearied by the struggle and sick at be reckoned with him at the last judgment,
heart at the defection of his fellow-combat- when his soul, tried by so many and great
ants, he longed to retire to a monastery, temptations, would shine forth. He excuses
and was only restrained by his care for himself for joining Theodoret and those who
his flock {ib. 770, c. 68). The year 433 saw had accepted the concordat, as the letters
the concordat between Cyril and John con- produced from Cyril were in perfect harmony
firmed, to the indignation of the irreconcilable with apostolical traditions {ib. 888, c. 193).
party. A synod held by Helladius at Tarsus Then Helladius
passes from the history. The
indignantly repudiated the "execrable agree- letters are printed by Chr. Lupus (Ep. Ephe-
ment," and declared that the condemnation sinae, Nos. 68, in, 114, 144, 154, 193) and by
could not be removed from " the Egyptian " Baluze, Concil. Nov. Collect, in the Tragoedia
until he had " anathematized his own anathe- Irenaei, cc. 68, in, 114, 117, 130, 164, 192, 193.
matisms." The firmness of Helladius rejoiced Tillem. Mem. t. xiv. Le Quien, Or. Christ. ;

Alexander, who wrote that he intended to t. ii. p. 874 Cave, Hist. Lit. t. i. p. 418. [e.v.]
;

hold a synod himself, begging Helladius, whom HelvidiuS, a Western writer who, like
he regarded as his leader, to attend it and sign Novatian and Pelagius, Jovinian and Vigi-
its decrees {ib. 713, c. no ;814, c. in ;815, lantius, put forward opinions on anthropo-
c. 114)- Helladius with Eutherius of Tyana logical subjects opposed to the generally
next drew up a long letter to pope Sixtus, received teaching of the chiurch in their day.
giving their account of the council of Ephesus The only extant contemporary notice of
and begging him as a new Moses to save the him is the short tract against him by St.
true Israel from the persecution of the Egyp- Jerome {0pp. ii. p. 203-230, ed. Vail.), written,
tians. This was sent round to obtain the when they were both at Rome, while pope
signatures of other bishops {ib. 817 sqq. c. 117). Damasus «vas alive. It appeared, according
At this period we have a letter from Theodoret, St. Jerome says he
to Vallarsius, a.d. 383.
complaining that Helladius refused to answer had put off answering him for some time :

him and seemed to regard him as a deserter. " Ne respondendo dignus fieret, qui vincere-
Theodoret had accepted Cyril's letter because tur " and he describes him throughout as
;

he found it orthodox, but he would never " hominem rusticanum, et vix primis quoque
desert Nestorius {ib. 813, c. no). The resolu- imbutum literis " (§ i) ; besides being wholly
tion of Helladius now began to break down. unknown him
to " Ego ipse, qui contra te
:

The concordat was accepted by an increasing scribo, quum in eadem urbe consistam, albus,
number of Oriental prelates and he was left ut aiunt, aterve sis, nescio." St. Jerome
more and more alone. John wrote to com- speaks of his own work in writing to Pam-
plain of his obstinacy {ib. 842, c. 140). Theo-machius as " librum contra Helvidium de
dosius threatened to put the civil power in beatae Mariae virginitate perpetud " {Ep. xlviii.
motion against him and the other recusants. § 17), this being what his opponent had denied
He, Alexander, Theodoret, and Maximian in the first instance, though the outcome of
were ordered to accept the concordat or resign his opinions had been to rank virginity below
their sees. All eventually yielded except matrimony. Helvidius sought countenance
Alexander. The quaestor Domitian and for his first point in the writings of Tertullian
Theodoret both urged Helladius to submit and Victorinus. St. Jerome shews (§ 17) he
{ib.829, c. 125 ; 859, c. 160), and this was had misrepresented the latter ; of Tertullian,
made easier by the death of Maximian, Apr. whose writings may still speak for themselves,
12, 434, and the succession of the saintly he merely says, " Ecclesiae hominem non
Proclus (Socr. H. E. vii. 41). The orthodoxy fuisse." But, in any case, he retorts with
of the new bishop was readily acknowledged much force What avail straggling opinions
:

by Helladius (Baluz. 850, c. 148), who, having against primitive truth ? " Numquid non
determined on yielding, wrote to Alexander possum tibi totam veterum scriptorum seriem
to explain his conduct {ib. 862, c. 164). commovere Ignatium, Polycarpum, Ire-
:

Alexander bitterly reproached him with his naeum, Justinum Martyrem, multosque alios
weakness {ib. 863, c. 164), but the latter apostolicos et eloquentes viros, qui adversus
convoked the bishops of his province, whose Ebionem, et Theodotum Byzantium, Valen-
synodical letters to Theodosius declared their tinum, haec eadem sentientes, plena sapientiae
complete acceptance of all required of them : volumina conscripserunt. Quae si legisses
admission of the decrees of the council of aliquando, plus saperes." This argument is
Ephesus, communion with the rati-
Cyril, just as suitable to our own as it was to
fication of Nestorius's sentence of deposition, patristic times, never losing anything by
and the anathematization of him and his ad- repetition. What had Helvidius to oppose
herents {ib. 887, c. 192). Helladius thus saved to it in this case ? Nothing, unless his ad-
himself from deposition and exile at the ex- versary misrepresents him, but novel inter-
pense of consistency. He had now to justify pretations of Scripture by himself. St.
his conduct to Nestorius, whom he had re- Jerome therefore refutes him only so far as
peatedly promised never to forsake. The to point out that there is no necessity for
task was no easy one ; nor can we say that understanding any of the passages adduced
he fulfilled it with any honour to himself. He by him otherwise than the church had under-
wrote Nestorius that though through men's stood them hitherto but that, in any case, the
;

evil deeds everything had turned out directly interpretations of them offered by Helvidius
contrary to his prayers, his feeling towards were delusive. For the application of the
him remained unchanged, and that, as he views of Helvidius to the question of the
knew he was still struggling for true piety, he perpetual virginity of the Lord's mother see
believed that he would joyfully endure all Lightfoot, Galatians, pp. 247-282, andMurray's
HENOTICON, THE HENOTICON, THE 443

Illus. B. D. (1908), art. James. As Jerome him to communion, but could not render him
nowhere charges Helvidius with having been worthy to beachief ruler of the church (Liberat.
" a disciple of Auxentius," the Arian bp. Diac. Breviar. cc. 16, 17 Evagr. H. E. iii. 12).
;

of Milan, or " an imitator of Symmachus," This opposition roused the indignation of


the champion of idolatry, we may well ask Zeno, who issued imperative commands to
with Vallarsius where Gennadius, who wrote Pergamius, the new prefect of Egypt, then
more than a century later, got authority for about to sail for Alexandria, and to Apollonius
both statements (de Script. Eccl. c. 33) which the governor, to expel John Talaia and seat
Cave repeats in part (Hist. Lit. i. 278). Neither Peter Mongus in his place. Acacius persuaded
St. Ambrose nor St. Augustine mentions him Zeno to present himself to the world in the
when, in writing on Virginity, they join novel character of an expounder of the faith "
St. Jerome in condemning his views. His of the Catholic church. The " Henoticon
followers constitute the 84th of the heresies was drawn up, and as did not directly
it

enumerated by the latter. [e.s.ff.] mention the council of and a


Chalcedon
Henoticon, The, or instrument of Union, hypothetical allusion in it was capable of being
a document owing its existence to Acacius, construed in a depreciatory sense, it could be
the patriarch of Constantinople, and probably accepted by those who, like Mongus, had
the production of his pen, put forth by hitherto rejected that council's decrees. The
the emperor Zeno, a.d. 482, on his restora- friends of Mongus undertook that he would
tion to the throne, after the discomfiture of adopt it, and on this he was recognized by
the usurper Basiliscus, with the view of Zeno and Acacius as the canonical patriarch
putting an end to the dissensions caused by and his name inserted in the diptychs.
what Gibbon calls " the obstinate and san- The " Henoticon " was directed to the
guinary zeal of the Monophysites." Like bishops and people in Alexandria, Egypt,
every endeavour, however well meant, to Libya, and Pentapolis ;but, as Tillemont has
cover radical differences by a vague compre- remarked (Mem. eccl. xvi. 327), it was really
hensiveness, it not only failed to secure union addressed only to those who had separated
but aggravated the divisions it was intended to themselves from the church, i.e. to the Mono-
cure, and created a schism which divided the physites or semi-Eutychians. The original
East and West for nearly 40 years, lasting document is given by Evagrius (H. E. iii. 14)
down to the reign of Justinian and the pope- and in a not very clear Latin translation by
dom of Hormisdas. Liberatus (Breviar. c 18 Labbe, Concil.
;

The immediate cause of its issue was the V. 767). It commences by stating that
dissension between the rival occupants of the " certain abbats, hermits, and other reverend
patriarchal see of Alexandria. On the death persons had presented to the emperor a
of Timotheus Salofaciolus in 482, John petition, supplicating him to restore the unity
Talaia, the oeconomus of the Alexandrian of the churches, and enlarging on the lament-
church, was elected by the orthodox party. able results of the late divisions." On this
He at once, according to custom, dispatched account, and knowing also that the strength
synodical letters to the chief bishops of and shield of the empire rested in the one true
Christendom, to notify his election. Those faith declared by the holy Fathers gathered at
addressed to Simplicius of Rome and Calan- Nicaea, confirmed by those who met at Con-
dion of Antioch were duly received ;but the stantinople and followed by those who had
letters for Acacius and Zeno were delayed, and condemned Nestorius at the council of
Acacius heard of John's appointment from Ephesus, the emperor declares that " the
another quarter. Thinking the seeming neg- creed so made and confirmed is the one only
lect a studied insult, Acacius and Gennadius, symbol of faith, and that he has held, holds,
bp. of Hermopolis Minor, a relation of Timo- and will hold no other, and will regard all who
theus Salofaciolus, and " apocrisiarius " or hold another as aliens, and that in this alone
legate of the see of Alexandria, who conceived those who desire saving baptism must be
that he too had been slighted by the new baptized." All who hold other views he
patriarch, determined to compass his over- anathematizes, and recognizes the twelve
throw. They represented to Zeno that Talaia chapters of Cyril as a symbolical book. The
was unworthy of the patriarchate, both as document then proceeds to declare the ortho-
having replaced the name of Dioscorus on the dox faith, viz. " that our Lord Jesus Christ is
diptychs, and as having perjured himself by the only-begotten Son of God, and Himself
accepting the see of Alexandria, after having, God, incarnate, consubstantial with the Father
as was asserted, taken an oath that he would according to His Godhead, and consubstantial
not seek for it. Zeno readily gave credence with us according to His manhood, that He
to these charges, and when it was further came down from heaven, and was incarnate
represented that, if he recognized Peter Mon- by the Holy Ghost of the Virgin Mary, Mother
gus, the deposed patriarch, peace would be of God, and that He is One Son, not two."
restored, he wrote to Simplicius, stating his That " it was this one and the same Son of
grounds for hesitating to sanction the appoint- God Who wrought miracles, and endured the
ment of John, and urging the restoration of sufferings which He underwent voluntarily in
Peter Mongus to put an end to the distractions His flesh." Those " who divide or confound
of the church. Simplicius replied, June 482, the natures, or admit only a phantastical
that he would delay recognizing John as incarnation," are to be rejected, " since the
patriarch until the grave charges brought by incarnation without sin of the Mother of God
Zeno could be investigated but he utterly
;
did not cause the addition of a Son, for the
refused to allow the elevation of a convicted Trinity remained even when one Person of the
heretic such as Peter Mongus to the patriarchal Trinity, God the Word, became incarnate."
see. His return to the true faith might restore It asserts that this is no new form of faith,
444 HENOTICON, THE HENOTICON, THE
and anathematizes all who have ever thought, Proterius and Timotheus Salofaciolus, dis-
or do think, " anything to the contrary, either interring the remains of the latter and casting
now or at any other time, either at Chalcedon them out of the church inserted the names
;

or in any other synod," especially Nestorius of Dioscorus and Timotheus Aelurus and ;

and Eutyches and their followers. It closes anathematized the council of Chalcedon and
with an earnest appeal to all to return to the the tome of Leo. When called to account by
church which, " as a loving mother, opens her Acacius, he coolly denied the anathemas, and
longing arms to receive them." professed his acceptance of the faith as declared
Such was the document which was to at Chalcedon. He wrote to the same effect to
" combine all the churches in one harmonious Simplicius, expressing a desire to be received
confederacy." It was " a work of some skill, into communion by him (Evagr. H. E. iii. 17 ;

of some adroitness, in attempting to reconcile, Liberat. Breviar. c. 18). Such double-dealing


in eluding, evading difficulties ; it is subtle to estranged many own party, and the dis-
of his
escape subtleties" (Milman, Hist, of Lat. cussions of which the unhappy " instrument
Christ, bk. iii. c. i. vol. i. p. 248). The crucial of union "
was the parent were still further
test of the unity or duality of the natures of aggravated by the cruel persecution of the
the Incarnate Word is left an open question, orthodox throughout the whole of Egypt by
on which a difference of opinion might be the new patriarch. In bold defiance of the
lawfully permitted. Gibbon's verdict is by prohibitions of the emperor, all, whether
no means an unfair one, that " it accurately clerics, monks, or laymen, who refused to
represents the Catholic faith of the incarnation accept the " Henoticon " were subjected to
without adopting or disclaiming the peculiar expulsion and serious maltreatment (Evagr.
terms of the hostile sects " (vol. vi. p. 44, c. H. E. iii. 22). At this crisis Simplicius died,
xlvii.). Butits fatal error was its feebleness, A.D. 483. The first act of his successor, Felix
and that endeavoured to substitute for real II., was an indignant rejection of the " Heno-
it
unity of doctrine a fictitious cohesion of dis- ticon," as an insult to the council of Chalcedon,
cordant elements. The Monophysites who as an audacious act of the emperor Zeno, who
subscribed were to be admitted into com- dared to dictate articles of faith, and as a seed-
munion without being required to give up plot of impiety (Theod. Led. ap. Milman, ti.s.
their distinctive doctrines ; while their p. 236). He also anathematized all bishops
opponents were left free to maintain the who had subscribed this edict. This anathema
authority of the decrees of Chalcedon and the included nearly all the bishops of the East. A
tome of Leo. The resulting peace was natur- strong admonitory letter was addressed by
ally more apparent than real and satisfied no Felix to Acacius, and another in milder terms
one. The Catholic party, zealous in their to Zeno, the authors of the " Henoticon." All
advocacy of the council of Chalcedon, had no remonstrance proving vain, Felix fulminated
liking for a document which disparaged its an anathema against Acacius, deposing and
authority and suggested the possible erro- excommunicating him, July 28, a.d. 484
neousness of its decisions. The Monophysites, (Liberat. c. 18 Labbe, Concil. iv. 1072).
;

on the other hand, clamoured for a more This anathema severed the whole of the
definite condemnation of a council which they Eastern church from the West for nearly 40
regarded as heretical. The high Chalcedonian years. [Acacius.] Neither emperor nor
party, chiefly consisting of the monastic patriarch took much heed of the condemnation
orders, condemned the " Henoticon " as of the Roman see, and continued to press the
tainted with Eutychianism, and, on the other " Henoticon " everywhere, ejecting bishops
hand, the Eutychians or Monophysites, who withheld their signatures and refused to
indignant with Mongus for turning traitor to communicate with Peter Mongus (Theoph.
their cause, separated themselves, and, form- p. 114 ; Liberat. c. 18 ; Vict. Tunun. Chron. ;

ing a distinct body without any chief leader Tillem. Mem. eccl. xvi. Aece, Art.
p. 168 ;

and not holding communion with the patri- xcv.). Calandion, patriarch of Antioch, was
arch, were designated " the headless sect," deposed, and Peter the Fuller reinstated.
" Acephali." A third body of dissidents was Thus the three chief sees of the East were in
formed by the high ecclesiastical party, who constrained communion and nearly all the
were offended at the presumption of the suffragan bishops had been silenced or de-
emperor in assuming a right to issue decrees posed. Zeno and Acacius had " made a
on spiritual matters, " a right," writes Milman, solitude and called it peace." It would be
(U.S. p. 235), " complacently admitted when tedious to narrate in detail the subsequent
ratifying or compulsorily enforcing ecclesias- issues of this unhappy attempt to force dis-
tical decrees, and usually adopted without cordant elements into external union which
scruple on other occasions by the party with continued under Acacius's successors and
which the court happened to side." A fourth under the emperor Anastasius. Anastasius
party was that of the centre or moderates, who required toleration of the bishops who were
were weary of strife, or too loyal or too forbidden to force the decrees of Chalcedon on
cowardly to resist the imperial power. This a reluctant diocese or to compel one which had
party of the centre was in communion with accepted that council to abandon it. Those
Peter Mongus, who had at once signed the who violated this law of toleration were
" Henoticon," and had had it read in church deposed with impartial severity (Evagr. H. E.
at a public festival and openly commended iii. 30). Euphemius was deposed from
it to the adoption of the faithful. Violence Constantinople a.d. 405. Macedonius, his
and falsehood characterized the conduct of successor, began by subscribing the " Heno-
Mongus. As soon as he felt himself safe in his ticon," but overawed by the obstinate
seat, his overbearing temper knew no bounds. orthodoxy of the " Acoemetae " and other
He removed from the diptychs the names of monastic bodies of Constantinople, whom he
HENOTICON, THE HERACLEON 445
had undertaken to reconcile to that instru- Hormisdas profited by the favourable oppor-
ment, he became an ardent partisan of the tunity to press his demands, which were
council of Chalcedon, and, after having headed admitted without question. The names of the
the religious tumults in the city which at one patriarchs Acacius, Fravitta, Euphemius, and
time threatened Anastasius's throne, was in Macedonius, together with those of the em-
his turn deposed and succeeded by Tixnotheus, peror Zeno and Anastasius, were erased from
A.D. 511. The new patriarch not only signed the diptychs, and Acacius was branded with
the " Henoticon," but pronounced an ana- a special anathema. Fresh disturbances were
thema on the council of Chalcedon. Flavian- created when it was found that Hormisdas
us, accused of being a concealed Nestorian, demanded the condemnation of all who had
was ejected from Antioch in a.d. 512, where communicated with Acacius, and turned a
the Monophysite Severus, who had raised deaf ear to the repeated applications of both
religious riots in the streets of Alexandria and emperor and patriarch for some relaxation of
Constantinople, reigned supreme. Elias of these terms (Evagr. H. E. iv. 4 Labbe, ;

Jerusalem, though making large concessions Concil. iv. 1542 Natal. Alexand. Hist. Eccl.
;

to the Catholic party, refused to go all lengths t. ii. p. 448). Hormisdas at last consented
with them, and was deposed in 513. that Epiphanius, John's successor, should act
" Throughout Asiatic Christendom it was the for him in receiving churches into communion.
same wild struggle. Bishops deposed quietly, Some honoured names were allowed to remain
or, where resistance was made, the two fac- on the diptychs, and eventually Euphemius,
tions fighting in the streets, in the churches. Macedonius, Flavian of Antioch, Elias of
Cities, even the holiest places, ran with Jerusalem and some others who had died
blood " (Milman, u.s. p. 245). during the separation, were admitted to the
The " Henoticon," so fruitful a source of Roman Calendars (Tillem. Mem. eccl. t. xvi.
dissension in the East, became also the watch- p. 697 BoUand. Apr. 25, p. 373).
;

word of rival parties in the West. Gelasius, Thus ended the unhappy schism. The
succeeding Anastasius II., sought to re-unite " Henoticon," without being formally re-
the churches by the proposal, couched in the pealed, was allowed to sink into oblivion. The
very spirit of the " Henoticon," that Acacius's four oecumenical councils, including Chalce-
name should be quietly left on the diptychs. don, were everywhere received, save in Egypt,
On his death in 498 a contested election and one common creed expressed the religious
ensued, exasperated by differences of opinion faith of the Christian world. Gibbon,
on the " Henoticon " and the schisms in the Decline and Fall, c. xlvii. Tillem. Mem. ;

East. Two rival pontiffs were consecrated on eccl. vol. xvi. " Acace " Schrockh, Kir-

Dec. 22, A.D. 499 Laurentius an advocate of chengesch. vol. xviii.
;

Migne, Pair. t. Iviii.


; ;

union, and Symmachus its uncompromising Evagr. H. E. libb. iii. iv. Liberat. Breviar.
;
;

opponent. Theodoric decided in favour of Walch, Ketzerhist. vol. vi. Fleury, Hist, ;

Symmachus, who had received the largest eccl. t. vi. vii. Neander, Ch. Hist. vol. iv.
;

number of votes. This choice was fatal to the pp. 253 ff. (Clarke's trans.) Dorner, Person, ;

restoration of peace in the East on the terms div. ii. vol. i. pp. 123 ff. Milman, Hist, of Lat.
;

of the " Henoticon." Pope and emperor Christ, vol. i. bk. iii. cc i. iii. [e.v.]
hurled at one another charges of heresy and Heracles, patriarch of Alexandria, a.d. 233-
messages of defiance. The turbulent orthodox 249 brother of the martyr Plutarch, one of
;

party at Constantinople was supported in its Origen's converts (Eus. H. E. vi. 3). From
obstinate resistance to the emperor bv the being a pupil he became an assistant in
Roman see. The rebellion of Vitalian, teaching to Origen, who left the school to him
characterized by Gibbon as " the first of the when he retired from Alexandria to Caesarea
religious wars," whose battle-cry was the (ib. 15, 26). Heraclas retained the school but
council of Chalcedon, was countenanced by a short time, for on the death of Demetrius
Symmachus's still more haughty successor, he was elected to the archiepiscopal throne.
Hormisdas, who reaped the fruits of the Heraclas did not adopt any of his teacher's
humiliation of the aged Anastasius and became peculiar views, but voted for his deprivation
" the dictator of the religion of the world." both from his office as teacher and from his
The demand of Hormisdas for the public orders and for his excommunication at the two
anathematization of the authors and main- synods held by Demetrius, nor when elected
tainers of the " Henoticon " was indignantly bishopdid he attempt torescindthesesentences.
rejected by Anastasius. The conflict only Eusebius (ib. 3 1) narrates avisit paid toHeraclas
ended with the life of Anastasius, who died by Africanus the annalist on hearing of his great
worn out by strife at the age of nearly 90 learning, and [ib. vii. 7), on the authority of his
years, a.d. 518. His successor, Justin, was successor Dionysius, gives his rule respecting
an unlettered soldier of unbending orthodoxy. the treatment of heretics. Le Quien, Oriens
The new patriarch, John of Cappadocia, " a Christ, ii. 392 Phot. Cod. 118 Acta SS. Boll.
; ;

man of servile mind though unmeasured Jul. 3. 645-647. [L.D.]


ambition," was prepared to adopt any course Heracleon (1), a Gnostic described by
which would secure his power. He had Clement of Alexandria [Strom, iv. 9, p. 595) as
seconded all the measures of Anastasius, but the most esteemed (SoKi/xtJoraros) of the school
at the demand of the mob he now hastily of Valentinus and, according to Origen
;

assembled a synod of 40 bishops, which [Com7n. in S. Joann. t. ii. § 8, 0pp. t. iv. p. 66),
anathematized all upholders of the " Heno- said to have been in personal contact (-yvuipiiios)
ticon," recalled the banished bishops, and with Valentinus himself. He is barely men-
deposed the so-called usurpers. All heretics, tioned by Irenaeus (ii. 41) and by Tertullian
i.e. those who refused the council of Chalcedon, (adv. Valent. 4). The common source of
were made incapable of civil or military office. Philaster and Pseudo-Tertullian [i.e. probably
446 HERACLEON HERACLEON
the earlier treatise of Hippolytus) contained salvation is of the Jews not in them, and again
an article on Heracleon between those on (iv. 40) that our Lord tarried with the Samari-
Ptolemaeus and Secundus, and on Marcus and tans, not in them notice is taken of the
;

Colarbasus. point in our Lord's discourse with the woman


The chief interest that now attaches to of Samaria, where He first emphasizes His
Heracleon is that he is the earliest commen- assertion with " Woman, believe Me " ; and
tator on the N.T. of whom we have know- though Origen occasionally accuses Heracleon
ledge. Origen, in the still extant portion of of deficient accuracy, for instance in taking
his commentary on St. John, quotes Heracleon the prophet (i. 21) asmeaning no more than
nearly 50 times, usually controverting, occa- a prophet "in three days " (ii. 19) as meaning
;

sionally accepting his expositions. We thus no more than "on the third day"; yet on
recover large sections of Heracleon's com- the whole Heracleon's examination of the
mentary on cc. i. ii. iv. and viii. of St John. words is exceedingly minute. He attempts
There is reason to think that he wrote com- to reconcile differences between the Evan-
mentaries on St. Luke also. Clement of gelists, e.g. our Lord's ascription to the
"
Alexandria (Strom, iv. 9) expressly quotes from Baptist of the titles " Elias " and " prophet
Heracleon's exposition of Luke xii. 8 and ;
with John's own disclaimer of these titles.
another reference (25 Eclog. ex Script. Proph. He finds mysteries in the numbers in the
p. 995) is in connexion with Luke iii. 16, 17, —
narrative in the 46 years which the temple
and so probably from an exposition of these was in building, the 6 husbands of the woman
verses. The fragments of Heracleon were of Samaria (for such was his reading), the 2
collected by Grabe {Spicileg. ii. 85, etc.), and days our Lord abode with the people of the
reprinted as an appendix to Massuet's, city, the 7th hour at which the nobleman's son
Stieren's, and Migne's editions of Irenaeus. was healed. He thinks it necessary to reconcile
The first passage quoted by Clement bears his own doctrine with that of the sacred
on an accusation brought against some of the writer, even at the cost of some violence of
Gnostic sects, that they taught that it was interpretation. Thus he declares that the
no sin to avoid martyrdom by denying the Evangelist's assertion that all things were
faith. No exception can be taken to what made by the Logos must be understood only
Heracleon says on this subject. " Men mis- of the things of the visible creation, his own
take in thinking that the only confession is doctrine being that the higher aeon world was
that made with the voice before the magis- not so made, but that the lower creation was
trates ; there is another confession made in made by the Logos through the instrumen-
the life and conversation, by faith and works tality of the Demiurge. Instances of this
corresponding to the faith. The first con- kind where the interpreter is forced to reject
fession may be made by a hypocrite and it : the most obvious meaning of the text are
is one not required of all there are many ; sufficiently numerous to shew that the gospel
who have never been called on to make it, was not written in the interests of Valentin-
as for instance Matthew, Philip, Thomas, ianism ;but it is a book which Heracleon
Levi [Lebbaeus] the other confession must
;
evidently recognized as of such authority
be made by all. He who has first confessed that he must perforce have it on his side.
in his disposition of heart will confess with the He strives to find Valentinianism in the
voice also when need shall arise and reason Gospel by a method of spiritual interpreta-
require. Well did Christ use concerning tion. Thus the nobleman (da(rtXu-6?, iv. 47)
confession the phrase in Me {eav 6f.io\oyriari ' '
is the Demiurge, a petty prince, his kingdom
ev ifxoi), concerning denial the phrase Me.' '
being limited and temporary, the servants
A man may confess Him with the voice ' '
are his angels, the son is the man who belongs
who really denies Him, if he does not confess to the Demiurge. As he finds the xfvxiKol
Him also in action but those only confess
; represented in the nobleman's son, so again
'
in Him who live in the confession and in
'
he finds the irvivixaTLKoL in the woman of
corresponding actions. Nay, it is He Whom Samaria. The water of Jacob's well which
they embrace and Who dwells in them Who she rejected is Judaism the husband whom
;

makes confession in them '


for He cannot '
;
'
she is to call is no earthly husband, but her
deny Himself.' But concerning denial. He spiritual bridegroom from the Pleroma the ;

did not say whosoever shall deny in Me,' '


other husbands with whom she previously
but whosoever shall deny Me for no one ' '
; had committed fornication represent the
that is in Him
'
can deny Him. And the
'
matter with which the spiritual have been
words before men
'
do not mean before
'
entangled that she is no longer to worship
;

unbelievers only, but before Christians and either in " this mountain " or in " Jerusa-
unbelievers alike before the one by their
; lem " means that she is not, like the heathen,
life and conversation, before the others in to worship the visible creation, the Hyle, or
words." In this exposition every word in kingdom of the devil, nor like the Jews to
the sacred text assumes significance and ; worship the creator or Demiurge her
;

this characteristic runs equally through the watering-pot is her good disposition for re-
fragments of Heracleon's commentary on St. ceiving life from the Saviour. Though the
John, whether the words commented on be results of Heracleon's metnod are heretical,
our Lord's own or only those of the Evangelist. the method itself is one commonly used by
Thus he calls attention to the facts that in the orthodox Fathers, especially by Origen. Many
statement " all things were made by Him," orthodox parallels to Heracleon's exposition
the preposition used is 5id that Jesus is said ; could be adduced, e.g. that the cords with
to have gone down to Capernaum and gone which our Lord drove the traffickers from the
up to Jerusalem that He found the buyers and
; temple represent the power of the Holy
sellers iv ry te/jy, not ev ry vaQ that He said ; Spirit ; the wood to which He assumes they
HERACLEON HERACLlDES CYPRlUS 44?

were attached, the wood of the cross. Origen and to have regarded them with a good deal
even occasionally blames Heracleon for being of tenderness. They are the children of
too easily content with more obvious inter- Abraham who, they do not love God, at
if
pretations. Heracleon at first is satisfied to least do not hate Him. Their king, the
take " whose shoe latchet I am not worthy to Demiurge, is represented as not hostile to the
loose" as meaning no more than " for whom Supreme, and though shortsighted and ignor-
I am not worthy to perform menial offices," ant, yet as well disposed to faith and ready
and he has Origen's approbation when he to implore the Saviour's help for his subjects
tries, however unsuccessfully, to investigate whom he had not himself been able to deliver.
what the shoe represented. It does not When his ignorance is removed, he and his
appear that Heracleon used his method of redeemed subjects will enjoy immortality in
interpretation controversially to establish a place raised above the material world.
Valentinian doctrine, but, being a Valentinian, Besides the passages on which he comments
readily found those doctrines indicated in the Heracleon refers to Gen. vi. Isa. i. 2 Matt.; ;

passages on which he commented. viii. 2, ix. 37 xviii. 11


; Rom. i. 25, xii. i
; ;

One other of his interpretations deserves I. Cor. XV. 54 II. Tim. ii. 13.
; Neander and
mention. The meaning which the Greek of Cave have suggested Alexandria as the place
John viii. 44 most naturally conveys is that where Heracleon taught but Clement's lan-
;

of the pre-Hieronymian translation " mendax guage suggests some distance either of time
est sicut et pater ejus," and so it is gener- or of place for he would scarcely have
;

ally understood by Greek Fathers, though in thought it necessary to explain that Heracleon
various ways they escape attributing a father was the most in repute of the Valentinians if
to the devil. Hilgenfeld and Volkmar con- he were at the time the head of a rival school
sider that the Evangelist shews that he em- in the same city. Hippolytus makes Hera-
braced the opinion of the Valentinians and cleon one of the Italian school of Valentinians ;

some earlier Gnostic sects that the father of but the silence of all the authorities makes it
the devil was the Demiurge or God of the unlikely that he taught at Rome. It seems,
Jews. But this idea was unknown to Hera- therefore, most likely that he taught in one of
cleon, who here interprets the father of the "
the cities of S. Italy or " Praedestinatus
;

devil as his essentially evil nature to which


; may be right in making Sicily the scene of his
Origen objects that if the devil be evil by the inventions about Heracleon.
necessity of his nature, he ought rather to be The date of Heracleon is of interest on
pitied than blamed. account of his use of St. John's Gospel, which
To judge from the fragments we have, clearly had attained high authority when
Heracleon's bent was rather practical than he wrote. The mere fact, however, that a
speculative. He says nothing of the Gnostic book was held in equal honour by the Valen-
theories as to stages in the origin of the uni- tinians and the orthodox seems to prove that
verse ; the prologue of St. John does not it must have attained its position before the
tempt him into mention of the Valentinian separation of the Valentinians from the
Aeonology. In fact he does not use the word church ; and, if so, it is of less importance to
aeon in the sense employed by other Valen- determine the exact date of Heracleon. The
tinian writers, but rather where according decade 170-180 may probably be fixed for the
to their use we should expect the word centre of his activity. This would not be
Pleroma and this last word he uses in a
; inconsistent with his having been personally
special sense, describing the spiritual husband instructed by Valentinus, who continued to
of the Samaritan woman as her Pleroma —
that teach as late as 160, and would allow time for
is, the complement which supplies what was Heracleon to have gained celebrity before
lacking to perfection. We find in his system Clement wrote, one of whose references to
only two beings unknown to orthodox Heracleon is in what was probably one of his
theology, the Demiurge, and apparently a earliest works. He had evidently long passed
second Son of Man for on John iv. 37 he
; from the scene when Origen wrote. (Neander,
distinguishes a higher Son of Man who sows Gen. Entwick. 143, and Ch. Hist. ii. 133 ;

from the Saviour Who reaps. Heracleon gives Heinrici, Val. Gnosis, 127 Westcott, A'^. T.
;

as great prominence as any orthodox writer Canon, 299.) The Gk. text of The Fragments
to Christ and His redeeming work. But all of Heracleon lias been ed. with Intro, and notes
mankind are not alike in a condition to profit by A. E. Brooke (Camb. Univ. Press), [g.s.]
by His redemption. There is a threefold order Heraclides (5) Cyprlus, bp. of Ephesus a ;

of creatures First, the Hylic or material,


:
native of Cyprus, who had received a liberal
formed of the vXtj, which is the substance education, was versed in the Scriptures, and
of the devil, incapable of immortality. had passed some years in ascetic training in
Secondly, the psychic or animal belonging to the desert of Scetis under Evagrius. He then
the kingdom of the Demiurge their \pvxv is
; became deacon to Chrysostom, and was in
naturally mortal, but capable of being clothed immediate attendance on him. On the de-
with immortahty, and it depends on their privation of Antoninus, bp. of Ephesus, a.d.
disposition (^^o-is) whether they become sons 401, there being a deadlock in the election
of God or children of the devil and, thirdly,
; through the number of rival candidates and
the pneumatic or spiritual, who are by nature the violence of the opposing factions, Chrysos-
of the divine essence, though entangled with tom brought Heraclides forward, and he was
matter and needing redemption to be delivered elected by the votes of seventy bishops to the
from it. These are the special creation of the vacant see. The election at first only in-
Logos they live in Him, and become one creased the disturbance, and loud complaints
;

with Him. In the second class Heracleon were made of the unfitness of Heraclides for
seems to have had the Jews specially in mind the ofiice, which detained Chrysostom in Asia
448 HEHMAS HERMAS
(Socr. H. E. vi. ii ; Soz. H. E. viii. 6
; Pallad. It isfound in the Sinaitic MS. following the
p. 139). At the assembling of the synod of Ep. of Barnabas, as an appendix to the N.T.
the Oak, a.d. 403, Heraclides was summoned After the 4th cent, it rapidly passed out of
to answer certain specified charges brought ecclesiastical use in the East.
against him by Macarius, bp. of Magnesia, a The Western tradition deserves more atten-
bishop named Isaac, and a monk named John. tion, as internal evidence shews the book to
Among these charges was one of holding have been composed at Rome. The Mura-
Origenizing views. The urgency with which TORiAN Fragment on the Canon tells us that
the condemnation of Chrysostom was pressed it had been written during the episcopate of
forward retarded the suit against Heraclides, Pius by his brother Hermas, a period which
which had come to no issue when his great the writer speaks of as within then living
master was deposed and banished. After memory. He concludes that the book ought
Chrysostom's second and final exile in 404, to be read but not publicly in the church
Heraclides was his fellow-sufferer. He was among the prophetic writings, the number of
deposed by the party in power, and put in which was complete, nor among the apostolic.
prison at Nicomedia, where, when Palladius The statement that the book not only might
wrote, he had been already languishing for but ought to be read is a high recognition of
years. A eunuch who, according to Palladius, the value attributed to it by the writer, and
was stained with the grossest vices, was con- we gather that at least in some places its
secrated bp. of Ephesus in his room (Pallad. use in church was then such as to lead some
Dial. ed. Bigot, p. 139). On the ascription to regard it as on a level with the canonical
to this Heraclides of the Lausiac History of Scriptures. TertuUian, in one of his earliest
Palladius, under the name of Paradisus treatises, de Oratione, has a reference to its-
Heraclidis, see Palladius (7) ; also Fabricius, influence on the practice of churches which
Bibl. Graec. x. 117 ; Ceillier, vii. 487. [e.v.] shews it to have enjoyed high authority at the
Hermas (2). In the latter half of the 2nd time, an authority which Tertullian's argu-
cent, there was in circulation a book of visions ment does not dispute. It had probably been
and allegories, purporting to be written by one used in church reading and translated into
Hermas and commonly known as The Shep- Latin, since TertuUian describes it by the
herd. This book was treated with respect Latin title Pastor, and not by a Greek title, as
bordering on that paid to the canonical he usually does in the case of Greek writings.
Scriptures of N.T., and was publicly read in Some ten years later, after TertuUian had
some churches. A passage from it is quoted become a Montanist, and the authority of The
by Irenaeus (iv. 20, p. 253) with the words, Shepherd is urged in behalf of readmitting
" Well said the Scripture," a fact which adulterers to communion, he rejects the book
Eusebius notes (H. E. v. 8). Probably in the as not counted worthy of inclusion in the
time of Irenaeus the work was publicly read canon, but placed by every council, even those
in the Galilean churches. The mutilated of the Catholic party, among false and apo-
commencement of the Stromateis of Clement cryphal writings {de Pudic. c. 10). Quoting
of Alexandria opens in the middle of a quota- Hebrews, he says that this is at least more
tion from The Shepherd, and about ten times received than that apocryphal Shepherd of
elsewhere he cites the book, always with a the adulterers (c. 20). The phrase " more
complete acceptance of the reality and divine received " warns us to take cum grano Ter-
character of the revelations made to Hermas, tullian's assertion as to the universal rejection
but without suggesting who Hermas was or of The Shepherd ; but doubtless the distinc-
when he lived. Origen, who frequently cites tion between apostolic and later writings was
the book [in Rom. xvi. 14, vol. iv. p. 683), then drawn more sharply', and in the interval
considered it divinely inspired. He suggests, between Tertullian's two writings The Shep-
as do others after him, but apparently on no herd may have been excluded from public
earlier authority, that it was written by the reading in many churches which before had
Hermas mentioned in Rom. xvi. 14. His other admitted it. The Liberian papal catalogue
quotations shew that less favourable views (probably here, as elsewhere, following the
of the book were current in his time. They catalogue of Hippolytus) states that under the
are carefully separated from quotations from episcopate of Pius his brother Ermas wrote a
the canonical books, and he generally adds a book in which the commands and precepts
saving clause, giving the reader permission to were contained which the angel gave him when
reject them ; he speaks of it [in Matt. xix. 7, he came to him in the habit of a shepherd.
vol. iii. p. 644) as a book current in the Yet, while refusing to assign the book to
church but not acknowledged by all, and [de apostolic times, it makes no doubt of the
Princ. iv. 11) as despised by some. Eusebius reality of the angelic appearance to Hermas.
(iii. 25) places the book among the orthodox Later biographical notices of popes state that
v69a with the .'Vets of Paul, Revelation of the message given to Hermas was that Easter
Peter, Epistle of Barnabas, etc. Elsewhere should always be celebrated on a Sunday.
(iii. 3), while unable to place it among the These clearly shew that by then all knowledge
bfxokoyovulva because rejected by some, he of the book had been lost ; and further notices
records its public use in churches and by some shew a confusion between the name of Hermas
most eminent writers, and that it was judged and that of his book, which imply that the
by some most necessary for elementary in- book was no longer in use. Jerome, when
struction in the faith. Athanasius (Ep. Fest. quoting Eusebius about the book {de Vir. HI.
39, vol. i. pt. ii. p. 963) classes it with some of 10, vol. ii. 845), adds that among the Latins
the deutero-canonical books of O.T. and with it was almost unknown. He speaks contemp-
The Teaching of the Apostles as not canon- tuously of it {in Habac. i. 14, vol. vi. 604),
ical, but useful for catechetical instruction. for it seems certain that the book of Hermas
HERMAS HERMAS 44d
is here referred to. It is marked in the repented of. The vision presents all the
Gelasian decree as apocryphal. Notwith- characteristics of a real dream ; the want of
standing, there are indications that some use logical connexion between the parts, the
of the book continued in the West, e.g. the changes of scene, the fading out of Rhoda as
fact being that there still exist some 20 MSS. principal figure and the appearance of the
of the Latin version. In the African church aged lady in her room ; the substitution of
of the 4th cent, we find from the list in the quite a different offence for the sinful thought
Codex Claromontantis (Westcott, Canon N. T. which weighed on his conscience at the begin-
p. 557) that it was placed with the Acts of Paul ning ;the physical distress in his sleep at
and the Revelation of St. Peter as an appendix first presenting the idea of walking on and on
to the N.T. books ; and it occupies a similar without being able to find an outlet, after-
place in the Sinaitic MS., the only Greek Bible wards of mental grief at words spoken to
known to have contained it. But in some him the long reading of which only the words
;

existing Latin MSS. it is placed with the spoken immediately before awaking are re-
apocryphal books of O.T. —
membered, all these indicate that we are
The book is in three parts. The first reading not a literary invention like the dream
part consists of visions. Hermas tells that of the Pilgrim's Progress, but the recital, a
he who had brought him up had sold him little dressed up it may be, of a dream which
to Rome to a lady named Rhoda ; that the narrator really had. In another vision,
after a considerable time he renewed his a year after, he saw again the lady and her
acquaintance with her and began to love her book, and received the book to copy, but still
as a sister; that he saw her one day bathing it conveyed no idea to his mind. He then set
in the Tiber and assisted her out of the water ;
himself by fasting and prayer to learn its
that admiring her beauty he thought how meaning, and after about a fortnight was
happy he should be if he had a wife like her gratified. He learns, too, that the lady is
in person and disposition. Further than this not, as he had imagined, the sibyl, but the
his thought did not go. But a little time church, and that she appeared as old because
after he had a vision. He fell asleep, and in she was created first of all, and for her sake
his dream was walking and struggling on the world was made. Ephesians, which prob-
ground so rugged and broken that it was ably suggested this doctrine of the pre-
impossible to pass. At length he succeeded existence of the church, is one of the N.T.
in crossing the water by which his path had books of whose use by Hermas there are clear
been washed away, and coming into smooth traces. In subsequent visions we have a
ground knelt to confess his sins to God. Then different account of the matter he sees in
;

the heavens were opened and he saw Rhoda each a woman more and more youthful in
saluting him from the sky. On his asking her appearance, whom he is taught to identify
what she did there, she told him that she had with the church of his former vision and it ;

been taken up to accuse him, because God was is explained that he saw her old at first be-
angry with him for having sinned in thought cause the spirit of Christians had been broken
against her. Then Hermas was overwhelmed by infirmity and doubt, and afterwards more
with horror and fear, not knowing how he youthful as by the revelations made him
could abide the severity of God's judgment, if their spirit had been renewed. After his
such a thought as his was marked as sin. first two visions Hermas watched eagerly for
Rhoda now passes out of his dream and he new revelations, and set himself to obtain them
sees a venerable aged lady clad in shining by fasting and prayer. In those later visions,
garments sitting on a great white chair and while the pictures presented to his mind are
holding a book in her hand. She asks why such as we can well believe to have been
he, usually so cheerful, is now so sad. On dream representations, the explanations given
telling her, she owns what a sin any impure of them have a coherence only to be found
thought would be in one so chaste, so single- in the thoughts of a waking man. This is
minded and so innocent as he but tells him still more true of the second and third parts
;

that this is not why God is displeased with of the work. At the end of the first part he
him, but because of the sins of his children, has the vision in which he sees a man dressed
whom he, through false indulgence, had like a shepherd, who tells him that he is the
allowed to corrupt themselves, but to whom angel of repentance and the guardian to whose
repentance was open if he would warn them. care he had been entrusted. From this
Then she reads to him out of her book, but shepherd he receives, for his instruction and
of all she reads he can remember nothing that of the church, the " Commandments,"
save the last comforting sentence, and that which form the second, and the " Similitudes,"
all which preceded was terrible and threaten- which form the third, part of the work. The
ing. She parted from him with the words, Similitudes were probably suggested by N.T.
" Play the man, Hermas." Hermas was an parables, though the frigid compositions of
elderly man with a grown-up family, and Hermas fall infinitely below these.
Rhoda must have been at least as old as him- The literary merits of the work of Hermas
self. If the tale is an invented one, this is are of little importance compared with the
certainly an incongruity ; but if it be a true fundamental question as to the date of the
story, it is quite conceivable that the thought book and whether it claims to be an inspired
may have occurred to Hermas, who seems to document, the writer of which aspires to no
have been not happy in his family relations, literary merit, save that of faithfully recording
how much happier it would have been for the revelations made him. Are we to suppose
him if Rhoda had been his wife ; and that that Hermas in relating his visions intended
afterwards, in a dream, this thought may no more than to present edifying lessons in an
have recurred to his memory as a siu to be allegorical form, aud that it was merely as
2U
:

450 HERMAS HERMAS


an instructive fiction that the book was re- of teaching His church were different from
garded when it was introduced into public those which the experience of so many follow-
reading in the church ? Donaldson says ing centuries has taught us. A Christian
" If the book be not inspired, then either the cannot regard them as fools for believing that
writer fancied he had seen these visions, or in the time of our Lord and His apostles a
tried to make other people fancy this, or he great manifestation of the supernatural was
clothed the work in a fictitious form designedly made to the world. How long and to what
and undisguisedly. If he did the first, he extent similar manifestations would present
must have been silly. If he did the second, themselves in the ordinary life of the church
he must have been an impostor." But as he only experience could shew, and they are not
believes the author to have been " an honest, to be scorned if their expectations have not
upright, and thoughtful man," he concludes been borne out by later experience. In par-
that he did the third, " as multitudes of ticular, if we are to set down as fools all who
others have done after him, with John have believed that supernatural intimations
Bunyan at their head." If we took this view may be given in dreams, our list would be a
we could lay no stress on anything the author long one, and would include many eminent
tells us about himself and his family. These names and though modern science may re-
;

details might be fictitious, as the angels, the gard visions as phenomena admitting a natural
towers, and the beasts of the visions. We could explanation, it is not reasonable to expect
not even assume that his name was Hermas, such a view from the science of the 2nd cent.
for the narrator of the visions, who bears this What Hermas tells of his personal history
name, might be an imaginary personage. and of the times and circumstances of his
But we ourselves feel bound to reject this as visions conveys to us the impression of artless
altogether mistaken criticism, and as an truth. His information about himself is ,

application to the 2nd cent, of the standards contained in incidental allusions, not very
of to-day. To us it seems plain that, what- easy to piece together and the author of a
;

ever the author intended, the first readers of fictitious narrative would not have conveyed
Hermas did not receive the book as mere so obscurely what he tells about his hero.
allegorical fiction. Bunsen (Hippolytus and He would probably also have made him a
his Age, i. 315) tells us that Niebuhr used to man of some eminence, holding high church
pity the Athenian (sic, Qu. Roman ?) Chris- office, whereas Hermas always speaks of the
tians for being obliged to listen to this " good presbyters as if he were not one of them,
but dull novel." If the authorities of the and could have no motive for making his
church regarded it merely as a novel, would hero one engaged in trade unsuccessfully and
they have appointed it for public reading ? not very honestly, and an elderly man with
At the end of the century Clement and others a termagant wife and ill brought-up children.
shew no doubt of the reality of the visions. On the other hand, if the book be true history,
Were the men of a couple of generations it is very much to the point that Hermas
earlier likely to have been more severe in their should get a revelation, directing his wife to
judgments, and would an angelic appearance keep her tongue in better order, and his
seem to them so incredible that one who children to pay more respect to their parents ;

related it would be regarded as the narrator nor need we suppose Hermas guilty of dis-
of a fiction that he did not intend to be be- honesty in thus turning his gift of prophecy
lieved ? The book itself contains directions to the advantage of his family comfort ; for
to the rulers of the Roman church to send the nothing can be more natural than that the
volume to foreign churches. If we suppose thoughts which troubled his waking moments
it really was sent to them stamped as a pro- should present themselves in his visions.
phetic writing by the authority of the Roman There is nothing incredible in the supposition
church, we have an explanation of the con- that the pictures of the first vision did present
sideration, only second to that of the canonical themselves to the mind of Hermas as he re-
Scriptures, which it enjoyed in so many dis- lates them. They must have been very vivid,
tant churches. A man at the present day and have impressed him strongly. Still, it is
might publish a story of visions, and be per- a year before he has another vision. After
suaded that his readers would not take him this he begins to fast and pray and look out
seriously, but no one in the 2nd cent, would eagerly for more revelations. Finally he
be entitled to hold such a persuasion, and if comes to believe himself to be under the
the book of Hermas was accepted as inspired, constant guardianship of the shepherd angel
the writer cannot be acquitted of the respon- of repentance, and he ascribes all the lessons
sibility of having foreseen and intended this he desires to teach to the inspiration of this
result. Mosheim, de Rebus Christ, ante Const. heavenly monitor. But perhaps his language
163, 166, holds that the writer must either expresses no more than his belief in the divine
have been " mente captus et fanaticus," or inspiration under which he wrote, for else-
else " scientem volentemque fefellisse," the where he states that he does not regard the
latter being the opinion to which he inclines, personages of his visions as having objective
believing that the lawfulness of pious frauds reality, and those things which in the earlier
was a fixed opinion with many Christians at part are represented as spoken to him by the
the date of the composition we are discussing. church are afterwards said to have been
We maintain, however, that it is possible to spoken by God's Spirit under the form of
disbelieve in the inspiration of Hermas the church. That he sincerely believed him-
without imputing folly either to him who self to be the bearer of a divine message
made the claim or to those who admitted it. appears to be the case. A summary of his
We must not regard the men of the 2nd cent, convictions would serve also for those of a
as fools because their views as to God's manner man in many respects very unlike, Savon-
HERMAS HERMAS 451
arola, (a) that the church of his time had as in the East did Quadratus and Ammia of
corrupted itself, and had become deeply Philadelphia (Eus. H. E. v. 16), and that he
tainted with worldliness ;
(b) that a time of really did publicly deliver his message in
great tribulation was at hand, in which the the church assembly. As the 2nd cent, went
dross should be purged away (c) that there
;
on, the public exercise of prophetic powers in
was still an intervening time, during which the church seems to have ceased, and when
repentance was possible and would be ac- revived by Montanus and his followers had
cepted ;
(d) that he was himself divinely to encounter much opposition. The ensuing
commissioned to preach that repentance. controversy led the church to insist more

Date and Authorship. Antiquity furnishes strongly on the distinction between the in-
authority for three suppositions (a)
: the spiration of the canonical writers and that of
author was the Hermas to whom a salutation holy men of later times, and the Muratorian
is sent in Rom. xvi. 14 ;or {b) brother to Pius, fragment exhibits the feeling entertained to-
bp. of Rome at the middle of the 2nd cent. wards the end of the cent, that the list of
;

or (c) contemporary with Clement who was prophetic writings had been closed and that
bishop at the very beginning of that century no production of the later years of the church
or the end of the preceding. The first may could be admitted.
be set aside as a highly improbable guess of But if, as we think, the Hermas of The
Origen. The author shews no wish to be taken Shepherd is not a fictitious character, but a
for the apostolic Hermas, but distinctly speaks real person known in the church of Rome in
of the apostles as all dead. A forger could the 2nd cent., we incline to follow Zahn in
have found many more suitable names than relying more on his connexion with Clement
Hermas, one of the least prominent in N.T., than with Pius. Zahn places The Shepherd
and of which, except in connexion with this c. 97 but if we assign that date to the epistle
;

book, there is no trace in ecclesiastical tra- of Clement we ought to allow a few years for
dition. If our view of the book be correct, that letter to have obtained the celebrity and
the author had no motive for antedating it. success which the notice in Hermas implies.
His prophecy announced tribulation close at That notice need not necessarily have been
hand and only a short intervening period for published in the lifetime of Clement, for Her-
repentance. To represent such a prophecy mas is not instructed to deliver his message
as being already 50 or 100 years old would be immediately, but only after the completion
to represent it as having failed, and in fact of his revelations, and this may have been
The Shepherd did lose credit when it had been after Clement's death.
so long in existence. Hermas seems to have Are, then, any indications of date in the
thought that, if the worldliness of the church book inconsistent with such an early date ?
could be repented of and reformed, it would There is much affinity between the leading
be possible to keep it pure during the brief ideas of Montanism and of the book of Hermas,
remainder of its existence. He announced especially as to the fall of many in the church
therefore forgiveness on repentance for sins from the ideal of holiness. The question was
of old Christians prior to the date of his reve- asked, Was it possible to renew such again to
lation, but none for those of new converts, repentance ? In both our Lord's second
or for sins subsequent to his revelation. To coming was eagerly looked forward to, and a
date his revelation 50 years back would have knowledge of God's coming dealings with His
defeated his own purpose and made his church sought for from visions and revelations.
message inapplicable to those whom he ad- But the teaching of Hermas is less rigorous
dressed. Again the acceptance of the book than the Montanistic, and all that is special
by the church of Rome is inexplicable if it to Montanism is unknown to him.
were introduced by no known person, con- Hermas directs his efforts almost exclusively
taining, as it does, revelations purporting to to combating the relaxation of morality in the
have been given among themselves and to a church he scarcely notices doctrinal errors,
;

leading member of their church. If the first and no reference to Gnostic doctrines can be
readers of the work of Elchesai or of the found in his book, unless it be a statement
Clementine homilies asked. Why
did we never (Sim. V. 7) that there were some who took
hear of these things before ? these books had licence to misuse the flesh on account of a
provided an answer in the fiction that the denial of the resurrection of the body. But
alleged authors had only communicated them these false teachers seem to have been all in
under a pledge of strict secrecy in this book,
; the church, not separate from it. In the
on the contrary, Hermas is directed (Vis. in. 8) passage which seems most distinctly to refer
to go after three days and speak in the hearing to Gnostics (ib. ix. 22), they are described as
of all the saints the words he had heard in his " wishing to know everything and knowing
vision. Elsewhere he enables us to under- nothing," as " praising themselves that they
stand how this direction could be carried out. have understanding, and wishing to be
We learn [Mand. 11) that certain persons teachers, though they were really fools."
were then recognized in the church as having Yet, he adds, " to these repentance is open,
prophetic gifts, and that at the Christian for they were not wicked, but rather silly and
meetings for worship, if after prayer ended without understanding." The seeds of Gnos-
one of them were filled with the Holy Spirit, ticism had begun to spring up even in apos-
he might speak unto the people as the Lord tolic times but we cannot think that Hermas
;

willed. The simplest explanation how the would have written thus after Gnosticism had
Roman Church came to believe in its inspira- become dangerous to the Roman church.
tion seems, then, to be that it had previously Hermas rebukes the strifes for precedence
admitted the inspiration of its author, that among Christians {Vis. iii. 9 Mand. ix. Sim.
; ;

be held the position of a recognized prophet viii. 7), and it is difficult to find in his book
452 HERMAS HERMAS
evidence of the existence of the episcopal form curately instructed he never quotes either
;
of government or of resistance to its intro- O. or N. T., nor is his
language much influenced
duction. He appears to use i-TrlaKowos as by Scripture phraseology,
and some would
synonymous with irp^cr^vTepoi and always describehimashaving preached not the Gospel,
speaks of the government of the church as in but merely a dry morality. The inference was
the hands of the ciders, without hinting that natural, if Pauline Christianity is so much in
one elder enjoyed authoritv over others. the background in Hermas, that he must have
Clement, indeed, is recognized'as the organ by been an anti- Pauline Jewish Christian; and
which the church of Rome communicated this may seem confirmed by the fact that the
with foreign churches ; but we are not told N.T. book which has most stamped itself on his
that implied a pre-eminence in domestic rule. mind is the Ep. of St. ames. Yet a closer ex-
J
Similarly, though we infer that the presbvters anaination finds no real trace of udaism in him.
J
had seats of honour in the church assemblies, It is scarcely credible that one brought up a Jew
we are not told that one had a seat higher than should seem so unfamiliar with O.T.* The
the rest. Either it was not the case or it was Jewish nation and its privileges are not even
too much a matter of course to be mentioned. mentioned, nor the distinction between
Jew
But a message regarding dissensions is sent and Gentile. Michael is not the guardian angel
Toh Trportyovfx^vois t?,s fKK\r]c7tas Kai Toh irpwro- of the nation, but of the Christian church.
KaOeSp'iTaii. It is a very forced explanation The only express quotation is from the lost
of the last plural noun to suppose it means apocryphal book of Eldad and Modad. His
some one of the wpoT)yo{>ixevoi who desired to use of either O. or N. T. not being indicated
make himself the first, nor have we reason by formal quotation, but only by coincidences
to think that the word implies any sarcasm. of language or thought, there is room for
It is more natural to understand that besides difference of opinion as to his use of particular
the presbyters there were others, such as the books. The proofs of the use of the Epp. of
teachers and prophets (Mand. xi.), who in J ames and of Ephesiansseem decisive, and only
church assemblies were given seats of honour. a little less strong in the case of I. Peter and
The church had at the time of this writing I. Cor. Of his use of the Gospel and Revelation
enjoyed a good deal of quiet, but this had of St. John we are persuaded, though we admit
evidently been broken by many harassing that the evidence is not conclusive. We believe
persecutions, in which some had apostatized. also that the knowledge of sayings of our Lord
Usually their danger is described as no more which Hermas unmistakably exhibits was ob-
than of loss of goods and of injury to worldly tained from our Synoptic Gospels, the coin-
business ;but there had been (though perhaps cidences with St. Mark (see Zahn, p. 457) being
not recently) martyrs who had given their most striking.
lives and endured crosses and wild beasts for Where Hermas had lived before he was sold
the Name of the Son of God. They could have to Rome we can only conjecture. According
saved themselves by denial or by committing to a reading which there seems no good ground
idolatry. Thus they suffered as Christians, to question, he supposes himself in one of his
and it has been inferred that the date must visions to have been transported to Arcadia,
be later than the well-known letter of Trajan and Mahaffy savs (Rambles in Greece, p. 330,
to Pliny which first made the profession of 2nd ed.) that the scenery he describes suits
Christianity unlawful. Yet it seems possible that in Arcadia, and does not suit the neigh-
to assign an earlier date to The Shepherd, and bourhood of Rome. Zahn conjectures that
to /. Peter which is affected by the same Hermas was born in Egypt because the archi-
argument, when we remember that Trajan tecture of the tower of Hermas's visions
only gave imperial sanction to the rule on resembles the description in Josephus of the
which Pliny had been acting already, and on Jewish temple in the Egyptian Heliopolis.
which others had probably been acting pre- The Shepherd has been edited by Hilgenfeld
viously ; for Pliny implies that trials of (Nov. Test. ext. Can. Rec. 1866) and Gebhardt
Christians were then well known. And it and Harnack (Patres Apostolici, 1877). The
may be argued that after the edict of Trajan latter ed. is indispensable, and contains a full
obstinate profession of Christianity was liable list of editions, and of works treating of
to be punished with death, whereas in the Hermas. Some interesting discussion is to
time of Hermas it seems to have been punished be found in the reviews of Gebhardt's ed. by
only by fine or imprisonment. Hermas lost Overbeck (Schurer, Theol. Literaturzeititng,
his business in the persecution, having been be- 1878), Donaldson in Theological Review (1878),
trayed, it seems, by his children. At the time and Zahn, Gottingen gelehrte Anzeigen (1878).
of the visions he was apparently farming. Zahn, Zahn, Der Hirt des Hermas (1868), is the work
who places the persecution under Domitian from which we have learned most. Another
ingeniously conjectures (p. 133) that Hermas ed. is by Funk (Pat. Apost. TUbingen, 1878).
was one of those to whom, as Dion Cassius A Collation of the Athos Codex of the Shepherd
tells (68, 2), Nerva made restitution bv giving with intro. by Dr. Lambros, trans, and ed.
land instead of the goods of which they had with preface and appendices by Dr. J. A.
been despoiled by Domitian. Robinson, has been pub. by Camb. Univ.
It is disappointing to have to add that an Press a cheap Eng. trans, of The Shepherd by
;

ordinary Christian of to-day would find in the Dr. C. Taylor (2 vols.) by S.P.C.K. and in ;

book neither much interest nor edification, and * The contrast is striking if we compare the full-
that the historical student finds in it much less ness of O.T. quotation in Clement's ep. with the
help than he might expect. Hermas is absorbed scantiness in Hermas. Harnack noted seven pas-
in trying to bring about a practical reform he sages which seem to shew acquaintance with 6.T.
shews much less interest in doctrine, in which Four of these relate to passages quoted in N.T.
;

books which seem to have been read by Hermas ;


possibly as a layman he was perhaps not ac- the other thjee are doubtful.
HERMENIGILD HERMES TRISMEGISTUS 453
Ante-Nic. Fathers, vol. ii. See also F. Spitta, The name " Hermes Trismegistus " never
Ziir Gesch. U
und Lit. der rchristenthiims, vol. ii. belonged to any single writer. Jamblichus,
(Gottingen, 1898), and Funk, in Theol. at the beginning of his treatise de Mysteriis,
Quartalschr. Ixxxi. and Ixxxv. [g.s.] tells us that " Hermes, who presides over
Hermenlgild (Ermenigild), St., Visigoth speech, is, according to ancient tradition,
Catholic prince in Spain, son of the Arian king common to all priests he it is who exists in
;

Leovigild. Hermenigild and Reccared were all of them. That is why our ancestors
sons of Leovigild's first wife (J oh. Bid. apud attributed all discoveries to him, and issued
Esp. Sagr. vi. 378), who was dead in 569. The their works under the name of Hermes."
dates of their births are unknown (? 560-562), There was, in fact, a long-continued series of
but Hermenigild was the elder. In 573 both books called " hermetic," extending over
sons were made "consortes regni" (ib.). Most several centuries. Tertullian, however (cont.
probably between 573 and 575 (cf. Greg. Tur. Valent. c. 15), speaks of Hermes Trismegistus
iv. 38) Hermenigild was betrothed to the Catho- as a master in philosophy and the extant
;

lic Frankish princess Ingunthis, the daughter hermetic books have, whatever their date,
of Sigibert of Rheims. In 579 (Joh. Bid. I.e. philosophical and spiritual relations of a very
381) Ingunthis, then 1 2 years old, reachedSpain, interesting kind. They belong, as is now
and, owing to dissensions between her and her generally agreed, to the neo- Platonic school ;

Arian grandmother, Leovigild sent the newly and gather up in a synthesis, the artificiality
married pair to a distance, assigning to Her- of which is not at first sight apparent, large
menigild the government of Baetica, or part of elements of all the different factors of religious
it, with Seville for a capital {ib.). Here later in belief in the Roman world or the 2nd and 3rd
579 (cf. Gorres, Kritische Untersuch. itber den cents. The two principal are the Uoifxdi'dprjs
Aufstand und das Marty Hum des Westgoth. (the "Shepherd of Men"), and the J\6yoi
Konigsohnes Hermenigild, in Zeitschriftfiir Hist. rAetos (or "Discourse of Initiation"), other-
Theol. 1873, i. n. 83 ; Dahn, Kon. der Germ. v. wise called " Asclepius." These two works,
137, gives 580 as the year) Hermenigild re- together with a variety of fragments, have
nounced Arianism, wasconfirmedin the Catholic been translated into French by M. Louis
faith by Leander the Catholic metropolitan of Menard (Paris, 1867), and accompanied with
Seville, and took the name of Joannes (Greg. a preliminary essay of much interest on the
Tur. v. 39 ; Greg. Magn. Dial. iii. 31 Paul. hermetic writings and their affinities generally.
;

Diac. iii. 21). This was immediately followed His most important fragments are from a work
by therebellion of Hermenigild (Joh. Bid. I.e.), entitled K6pr} Kda/xov (the " Virgin of the
who shortly afterwards formed a close alliance World "), a dialogue between Isis and her son
with the Byzantines in the south, and with the Horus on the origin of nature and of animated
recently catholicized Suevi in the north, i.e. with beings, including man. Other less noticeable
the two most formidable enemies of his father's works attributed to Hermes Trismegistus are
state and power (cf. Dahn, v. 138). Thus the named in D. of G. and R. Biogr. (s.v.).
struggle shaped itself as a conflict of confessions It is not to be assumed that these, the
and nationalities, of Arianism and Catholicism, noLfj.dvSpr]s, and \6yos r^Xeio^, are by the same
of Goth and Roman, although Leovigild had author but from their great similarity of
;

adherents among the provincials, and Hermeni- tone and thought, this is possible. Both
gild counted some Gothic partisans (ib. 140). works are quoted by Lactantius (who ascribed
It was not till the end of 582 that Leovigild to them the fabulous antiquity and high
felt himself strong enough to attack his son.
authority which the early Fathers were
Seville fell in 584 (Joh. Bid. I.e. 383), and wont to attribute to the Sibylline books)
;

shortly afterwards Hermenigild was captured and must have been written before c. 330,
in or near Cordova (ib. Greg. Tur. v. 39, vi. 43), when Lactantius died.
;
The historical allu-
deprived of the government of Baetica, and sions in the Asclepius distinctly point to a time
exiled to Valencia. In 585 Hermenigild was put when heathenism was about to perish before
todeath (Joh. Bid. 384). Isidore does not men- the increasing power of Christianity. Hence
tion her death at all. Gregory of Tours men- both these works were probably written
tions it in passing (Hist. Fr. viii. 28). Upon towards the close of the 3rd cent.
the account given by Gregory the Great alone Three motives are discernible in them.
(Dial. iii. 31) rests the claim of Hermenigild First, the endeavour to take an intellectual
to be considered not as a rebel suffering survey of the whole spiritual universe, without
the penalty of a political crime, but as a marking any points where the understanding
martyr for the Catholic faith. According to of man fails and has to retire unsatisfied this ;

the pope, Hermenigild, after a painful im- is a disposition which, under different forms
prisonment, was beheaded on the night of and at different times, has been called Pan-
Easter Sunday, by his father's apparitores, theism or Gnosticism (though the Gnostic idea
because he had refused to receive the sacra- of an evil element in creation nowhere appears
ment from the hands of an Arian bishop. in these treatises). The ideas of the author
After the execution, miracles were not wanting are presented with a gorgeous material
to substantiate his claim to veneration. In his imagery and, speaking generally, he regards,
;

grave, according to Gregory, were laid the foun- the material world as interpenetrated by the
dations of Visigothic Catholicism for, after spiritual, and almost identified with it.
;
The
Leovigild's death, his son Reccared was con- power and divine character which he attri-
verted by Leander and led the whole people of butes to the sun and other heavenly bodies are
the Visigoths to the true faith. [m.a.w.] peculiarly Egyptian, though this also brings
Hermes (1) Trismegistus. Under this title him into affinity with Stoic, and even with
we have a variety of writings of uncertain date Platonic, views. Secondly, this Pantheism
and unknown authorship originating in Egypt or Gnosticism is modified by moral and
454 HERMIAS HERMOGENES
religious elements which certainly might to Hermogenes preserved by Clement of Alex-
some degree be paralleled in Plato, but to andria {Eclog. ex Script. Proph. 56, p. 1002),
which it is difiScult to avoid ascribing a Jewish being unlike anything told of him by Tertul-
and even a Christian origin. Great stress is lian, was conjectured by Mosheim (de Rebus
laid on the unity, the creative power, the Christ, ante Const, p. 435), to belong to some
fatherhood and goodness of God. The argu- different Hermogenes. But the since recov-
ment from design also appears {Poeinander, ered treatise on heresies by Hippolj'tus
c. 5). Even the well-known terms of baptism combines in its account of Hermogenes (viii.
and regeneration occur, though in different 17, p. 273) the doctrines attributed to him by
connexions, and the former in a metaphorical Clement and by Tertullian. Probably Clem-
sense. One of the chapters of the Poeinander ent and Hippolytus drew from a common
is entitled " The Secret Sermon on the Moun- source, namely, the work " against the heresy
tain." The future punishments for wrong- of Hermogenes," which, Eusebius tells us
doing are described with emphasis, but there [H. E. iv. 24), was written by Theophilus of
is no moral teaching in detail. Thirdly, these Antioch, and which is mentioned also by
intellectual and religious elements are asso- Theodoret (Haer. Fab. i. 19), who probably
ciated with a passionate and vigorous defence drew from it his account of Hermogenes, in
of the heathen religion, including idol worship, which he clearly employs some authority
and a prophecy of the evils which will come different from the tenth book, or summary, of
on the earth from the loss of piety. They are Hippolytus, of which he makes large use of
thus the only extant lamentation of expiring elsewhere. Theodoret adds that Hermogenes
heathenism, and one that is not without was also answered by Origen, from which it -

pathos. But for the most part the style is has been supposed that he refers under this
hierophantic, pretentious, and diffuse. See name to the summary now ascribed to Hippo-
further Fabric. Bibl. Graec. vol. i. pp. 46-94 lytus;
but there is no evidence that Theodoret
;

Baumgarten Crusius, de Lib. Hermeticorum regarded this work as Origen's (see Volkmar,
Origine atque Indole (Jena, 1827) and Hippolytus und die romtschen Zeitgenossen,
;

Chambers, The Theol. and Philos. Works of p. 54), so that some lost work of Origen's must
Her. Tris. (Edin. 1882). [J-R-m.] be presumed. The passages cited are all our
Hermias (5), a Christian philosopher, author primary authorities about Hermogenes, except
of the Irrisio Gentiliiim Phtlosophorum, some statements of Philaster (sec below).
annexed in all Biblioihecae Patrtim to the A considerable distance of time and place
works of Athenagoras (Migne, Patr. Gk. vi. separates the notices by Theophilus and Ter-
1 167). It was published in Greek and Latin tullian. Theophilus survived the accession
at Basle in 1553. It consists of satirical re- of Commodus in 180, but probably not more
flections on the opinions of the philosophers, than two years. Hence 180 would be our
shewing how Anaxagoras, Empedocles, Pytha- latest date for the teaching of Hermogenes,
goras, Epicurus, etc. agree only in repelling which may have been earlier. He
probably had
and refuting one another. Who the author disciples at Antioch, and therefore must have
was seems to have baffled all inquiries. Some taught at or near there, and any writing of
identify him with Hermias Sozomen the eccle- his answered by Theophilus must have been
siastical historian. Even the martyr of May written in Greek. Tertullian's tract against
31 has been suggested (Ceillier, vi. 332). Cave Hermogenes is assigned by Uhlhorn (Funda-
(i. 81) attributes the work to the 2nd cent. menta Chron. Tert. p. 60) to a.d. 206 or 207.
As it was plainly written when heathenism In it Hermogenes is spoken of as still living
was triumphant, Ceillier (u.s.) places it ("ad hodiernum homo in saeculo") and
under Julian. Neander (H. E. ii. 429, ed. coupled with one Nigidius in the work on Pre-
Bohn) regards Hermias as " one of those scription, c. 30, as among the heretics "who still
bitter enemies of the Greek philosophy whom walk perverting the ways of God." There are
Clement of Alexandria thought it necessary indications that the work to which Tertullian
to censure, and who, following the idle Jewish replies was in Latin, and every reason to think
legend, pretended that the Greek philosophy that Hermogenes (though probably, as his
had been derived from fallen angels. In the name indicates, of Greek descent) was then
title of his book he is called the philosopher ;
living in Carthage, for Tertulhan assails his
perhaps he wore the philosopher's mantle private character, entering into details in a
before his conversion, and after it passed at way which would not be intelligible unless
once from an enthusiastic admiration of the both were inhabitants of the same city. The
Greek pilosophy to extreme abhorrence of it " same inference may be drawn from the fre-
(Du Pin, H. E. t. i. p. 69, ed. 1723). The quency of Tertullian's references to Hermo-
latest ed. is by H. Diels, in Doxographi Graeci genes in works of which his errors are not the
(Berlin, 1879). [g.t.s.] subject [de Monog. 16 de Praescrip. 30. 33
; ;

Hermogenes (l), a teacher of heretical adv. Valent. 16 de Animd, i, 11, 21, 22, 24) ;
;

doctrine towards the close of 2nd cent., the for apparently proximity gave this heretic an
chief error ascribed to him being the doctrine importance in his eves greater than was other-
that God had formed the world, not out of wise warranted. Tertullian describes him as
nothing, but out of previously existing un- a turbulent man, who took loquacity for
created matter. Tertullian wrote two tracts eloquence and impudence for firmness. Two
in answer, one of which is extant, and is our things in particular are shocking to his then
chief source of information about Hermogenes. Montanist principles, that Hermogenes was
The minuteness with which his arguments are a painter, and that he had married frequently.
answered indicates that Tertullian is replying Neander and others have supposed that the
to a published work of Hermogenes, apparent- offence of Hermogenes was that he painted
ly written in Latin. Another doctrine of mythological subjects. But there is no trace
HERMOGENES HERMOGENES 455

of this limitation TertuUian's treatise,


in not give to matter the name of God, he
which shews all through a dislike of the pic- ascribes to it God's essential attribute of
torial art, and Tertullian seems to have con- eternity. He asks what just claim of lordship
sidered the representation of the human form God could have over matter as eternal as
absolutely forbidden by the 2nd command- Himself ; nay, which might claim to be the
ment. As for the charge of frequent mar- superior ; for matter could do without God,
riages, if Hermogenes, who in 207 would be but God, it would seem, could not carry out
advanced in life, was then married to a third His work without coming to matter for
wife, a writer so fond of rhetorical exaggera- assistance. In the discussion every word in
tion as Tertullian might describe him as one the Mosaic account of creation receives minute
who had formed a practice of marrying (niibit examination and there is a good deal of
assidue), or who had " married more women strained verbal interpretation on both sides.
than he had painted." TertuUian's language But the authority, and apparently the canon,
may imply that Hermogenes had also endea- of Scriptmre were subjects on which both were
voured to prove from Scripture that a second agreed. Tertullian holds Scripture so exclusive
marriage was not unlawful. an authority that its mere silence is decisive,
With regard to the doctrines of Hermogenes, and, since it does not mention pre-existent
the language of Hippolytus suggests that he matter, that those who assert its existence
denied the physical possibility of creation incur the woe denounced against those who
from nothing ;but in the representation of add to that which is written.
Tertullian no stress is laid on the philosophic Though the word " materialist " is first
maxim, " Nihil ex nihilo," and the eternal heard of in this controversy, the views of
existence of matter seems only assumed to Hermogenes were very unlike those now
account for the origin of evil. The argument known by that name, and it is doubtful
of Hermogenes was, either God made the whether our word matter exactly corresponds
world out of His own substance, or out of to the hyle of Hermogenes. This apparently
nothing, or out of previously existing matter. included the ideas of shapelessness and dis-
The first or emanation hypothesis is rejected, orderly motion, so that all the sensible world
since He Who is indivisible and immutable could not, as in our modern language, be
could not separate Himself into parts, or described as material. That which became
make Himself other than He had ever been. KocT/aos ceased to be hyle, and, in fact, Ter-
The second is disproved by the existence of tullian does not admit the existence of matter
evil, for if God made all things out of nothing in the sense of Hermogenes. Hermogenes
unrestrained by any condition, His work held matter to be infinite and refused to apply
would have been all good and perfect like to it any predicate. It is without form, and
Himself. It remained, therefore, that God is described as in a perpetual state of tiurbulent
must have formed the world out of previously restless motion, like water boiling in a pot.
existent matter, through the fault of which It is not to be called good, since it needed the
evil was possible. Further, God must have Deity to fashion it ; nor bad, since it was
been always God and Lord, therefore there capable of being reduced to order. It is not
must always have existed something of which to be called corporeal, because motion, one
He was God and Lord. Tertullian replies that of its essential attributes, is incorporeal, nor
God was always God but not always Lord, and incorporeal because out of it bodies are made.
appeals to Genesis, where the title God is Hermogenes repudiated the Stoic notion that
given to the Creator from the first, but the God pervades matter, or is in it like honey in
title Lord not till after the creation of man. a honeycomb ; his idea was that the Deity,
Concerning TertuUian's assertion that God without intermixing with matter, operated
was not always Father, see Bull, Def. Fid. Nic. on it by His mere approach and by shewing
iii. 10. From the assertion of Hermogenes that Himself, just as beauty affects the mind by
God was always Lord of matter, Neander in- the mere sight of it (a very appropriate illus-
ferred that he must have denied any creation tration for a painter) or as a magnet causes
in time, and held that God had been from motion without contact merely on being
eternity operating in a formative manner on brought near. By this approach part of
matter. Tertullian does not appear to have matter was reduced to order and became
drawn this consequence, and (c. 44) assumes as the Kocixo^, but part remains unsubdued ;

undisputed some definite epoch of creation. and this, it is to be supposed, was in the theory
But the account of Hippolytus shews Neander of Hermogenes the source of evil. Tertullian
to have been right. With regard to the acutely remarks that this language about
general argument, Tertullian shews that the God's drawing near to matter as well as the
hypothesis of the eternity of matter relieves use of the words above and below with refer-
none of the difficulties of reconciling the ence to the relative position of God and
existence of evil with the attributes of God. matter cannot be reconciled with the doctrine
If God exercised lordship over matter, why of Hermogenes as to the infinity of matter.
did He not clear it of evil before He employed The lost tract of Tertullian against Hermo-
it in the work of creation ? Or why did He genes discussed the origin of the soul, which
employ in His work that which He knew to Hermogenes ascribed to matter, Tertullian to
be evil ? It would really, he says, be more the breath of life inspired by God at the
honourable to God to make Him the free and formation of man (Gen. ii. 7)- Tertullian
voluntary author of evil than to make him accuses his opponent of mistranslation in
the slave of matter, compelled to use it in substituting "Spirit" for " breath," appar-
His work, though knowing it to be evil. He ently in order to exclude the possibility of
contends that the hypothesis of Hermogenes interpreting this part of the verse of the
amounts to Ditheism, since, though he does communication of the soul, since the Divine
456 HERMOGENES HESYCHIUS
Spirit could not be supposed capable of falling account as untrustworthy, even though we
into sin. This supplies one indication that cannot now trace the origin of his confusion.
the tract to which Tertullian replies was in The tract against Hermogenes has been
Latin ;and Hermogenes, as a Greek by birth, analysed by writers on Tertullian ; e.g.
would probably not use the current Latin Neander, Antignosticus, p. 448, Bohn's trans. ;

translation of the Bible, but render for himself. Kaye, Tertullian, p. 532 ;Hauck, Tertullian,
The opinion of Hermogenes (not mentioned p. 240. Consult also arts. s.v. in Tillemont,
by Tertullian, but recorded by Clement, iii. and Walch, Hist, der Ketz. i. 576 ; and E.
Hippolytus, and Theodoret) is that our Lord Heintzel, Hermogenes {QerWn, 1902). [g.s.]
on His ascension left His body in the sun Hesychius (3) (Hesechius), bp. of an
and Himself ascended to the Father, a doc- Egyptian see, mentioned as the author, with
trine which he derived or confirmed from Phileas, Theodorus, and Pachumius, of a
Ps. xix., " He hath placed his tabernacle in letter to Meletius, schismatic bp. of Lycopolis
the sun." (Theodoret adds that Hermogenes in Egypt. The letter, given in a Latin version
taught that the devil and the demons would in Gallandius, Bibl. Patrum, iv. 67, is a remon-
be resolved into hyle. This agrees very well strance to Meletius on his irregular ordina-
with the doctrine that the soul derived its tions in other dioceses, and was written (c.
origin from matter.) It is a common point of 296) when the authors were in prison and
Gnostic doctrine that our Lord's nature was Peter of Alexandria alive. The martyrdom of
after the passion resolved into its elements Hesychius under Galerius, with Phileas,
and that only the purely spiritual part as- Pachumius, and Theodorus, is recorded in
cended to the Father. But on no other point Eus. Hist. Eccl. viii. 13. This Hesychius has
does Hermogenes approach Gnostic teaching ;
been usually identified with the reviser of the
in his theory of creation, he recognizes neither text of the LXX, and of N.T., or at least of
emanation from God nor anything inter- the Gospels, which obtained extensive cur-
vening between God and matter ; his general rency in Egypt. There are no grounds for
doctrine was confessedly orthodox and he questioning the truth of this conjecture.
would seem to have no wish to separate This Hesychian recension is mentioned more
from the church nor to consider himself as than once by Jerome, who states that it was
transgressing the limits of Christian philo- generally accepted in Egypt, as that of his
sophic speculations. fellow- martyr, Lucian of Antioch, was in
It remains to notice Philaster's confused Asia Minor and the East (Hieron. Praef. in
account of Hermogenes. It would not cause Paralipom. ad Chromat. Ep. 107, repeated in
much difficulty that he counts {Haer. 53) the Apologia II. adv. Rufin. vol. i. p. 763, Paris,
Hermogenians as a school of Sabellians, called 1609). Jeromealsorefers toit as " exemplaria
after Hermogenes as the Praxeani were after Alexandrina " (in Esai. Iviii. 11). We know
Praxeas. Though the silence of Tertullian little or nothing more of this edition of the
leads us to believe that Hermogenes himself LXX. It was doubtless an attempt, like that
was orthodox on this point, his followers may of Lucian, to purify the text in use in Egypt,
very possibly have allied themselves with by collating various manuscripts and by re-
those of Praxeas against their common course to other means of assistance at hand.
opponent. But in the next section Philaster Jerome speaks with some contempt of his
tells of Galatian heretics, Seleucus and labours in the field of O.T. recension, and still
Hermias, and attributes to them the very more of his and Lucian's recension of the
doctrines of Hermogenes that matter was Gospels. If we interpret his words strictly,
co-eternal with God, that man's soul was from Hesychius, as well as Lucian, added so much
matter, and that our Lord deposited His to the text as to lay them open to the charge
body in the sun in accordance with the Psalm of falsifying the Gospels and rendering their
already quoted. It is beyond all probability work "apocryphal" (Hieron. Praef. in
that such a combination of doctrines could Evang. ad Damasum). The words of the
have been taught independently by two famous Decretal of Gelasius (c. 500) " On
heretics and it is not likely that Hermogenes ecclesiastical books," which are, however,
had disciples in Galatia we may therefore
; regarded by Credner {Zur Gesch. d. K. p. 216)
reasonably believe that Philaster's Hermias is as additions to the original decree " made at
Hermogenes. Philaster, however, attributes the time it was republished in Spain under
to his heretics other doctrines which we have the name of Hormisdas, c. 700-800 " (West-
no reason to think were held by Hermogenes : cott. Hist, of Can. p. 448, n. i), are equally
that evil proceeded sometimes from God, condemnatory :
" Evangelia quae falsavit
sotnetimes from matter
visible Paradise
;that there was no Isicius —
[Hesychius] Apocrypha " (Labbe,
;that water-baptism was not Cone. iv. 126). Westcott pronounces Hug's
to be used, seeing that souls had been formed speculations as to the influence of this recen-
from wind and fire, and that the Baptist had sion, " of which nothing is certainly known,"
said that Christ should baptize with the Holy " quite unsatisfactory " (ib.). [e-v.]
Ghost and with fire ;that angels, not Christ, Hesychius (25), presbyter of Jerusalem in
had created men's souls that this world was
; the first half of 5th cent., a copious and learned
the only " infernum," and that the only writer whose comments on Holy Scripture
resurrection is that of the human race occur- and other works gained a great reputation.
ring daily in the procreation of children. Considerable confusion exists as to the
Philaster may have read tracts not now extant, authorship of several of the treatises as-
in which Tertullian made mention of Hermo-
genes, and possibly if we had the lost tract

cribed to him a confusion which it is hope-
less entirely to remove. It is possible that
de Paradiso it might throw light on Philaster's some were written by the bp. of Salona.
statements. But we may safely reject his [Hesychius (6)-] It is altogether a mistake
A

HESYCHIUS HESYCHIUS ILLUSTRIS 4.57

to speak of Hesychius as bp. of Jerusalem. (3) I.Tixvpo" sive K€(pd\aia in XII-


Pro-
According to the Greek Menology, Mar. 28, phetas et Esaiam, an epitome of the 12 Minor
he was born and educated at Jerusalem, where Prophets and Isaiah, section by section.
" by meditating on the Scriptures he obtained (4) Fragments of Commentaries on Ezk.,
a deep acquaintance with divine things." Dan., Acts, James, I. Peter, and Jude.
On reaching manhood he l^ft home and (5) Difficuitatum et Solutionum Collectio. —
devoted himself to a solitary life in the harmonizing of 61 discrepant passages in the
desert, where he " with bee-like industry Gospel history, generally characterized by
gathered the flowers of virtue from the holy sound common sense and a reluctance to force
Fathers there." He was ordained presbyter an unreal agreement.
against his will by the patriarch of Jerusalem, (6) Eight Sermons, or Fragments of Sermons.
and spent the rest of his life there or at other (7)
'
AvTtppijTiKd. Kai 'EuKTiKCL. Two Centuries
sacred places. Hesychius the presbyter is of Moral Maxims on Temperance and Virtue
mentioned by Theophanes, who, in 412, speaks and Instructions on Prayer, addressed to one
of him as " the presbyter of Jerusalem," and Theodotus.
in 413 records his celebrity for theological (8) The Martyrdom of Longinus the
Centu-
learning. —
He is mentioned in the Life of rion. The author, according to Fabricius,
one
St. Euthymius by Cyril of Scythopolis (Cote- belonged to a much later period than the
ler. Eccl. Graec. Monum. t. ii. p. 233, § 42), who wrote the works previously enumerated.
(9) An Ecclesiastical History, of
as accompanying Juvenal, patriarch of Jeru- which a
salem, to the consecration of the church of fragment is given in the Acts of the council of
the "laura" of St. Euthymius, a.d. 428 or Constantinople, a.d. 353, Collat. Quinta, con-
429, and as received with much honour by the demnatorv of Theodore of Mopsuestia.
abbat. He is said by AUatius {Diatriba de Cave, Hist. Lit. t. i. p. 57o Fabricius,
;

Simeombus, p. 100) to have been Chartophylax Bibl. Graec. ed. Harles, t. vii. pp. 548-551 ;

or Keeper of the Records of the church of the Galland, Vet. Patr. Bibl. t. xi. Migne,
;
Patr.
Anastasis at Jerusalem. His death can only Gk. vol. xciii. pp. 781-1560. [e.v.]
be placed approximately c. 438. He is twice Hesychius (27) Illustris, a copious historical
mentioned by Photius, who shares to sorne and biographical writer, the son of an advocate
extent in the confusion as to the Hesychii, and born at Miletus. His distinctive name
and assigns him no date. In Cod. 275 Photius {'IWovffTpLo^) was the official title conferred by
quotes a rhetorical passage from a sermon Constantine the Great on the highest rank of
on James the Lord's brother and David state officers. Nothing is known of him
(deoirdruip), evidently delivered at Jerusalem. except that he lived in the reigns of Anastasius,
Hesychius compares Bethlehem and Sion, to Justin, and Justinian, and that his literary
the great advantage of the latter, and, in a labours were cut short by grief at the pre-
manner very natural in a presbyter of Jeru- mature death of a son named John. Suidas
salem, elevates St. James's authority above doubts whether he was a Christian on the
that of St. Peter in the council of Jerusalem. somewhat precarious ground of his omission
Of several of the numerous works attributed of all ecclesiastical writers in his work on men
to this author, all we can say is that they bear of learning. But very substantial reasons
the name of Hesychius in one of its forms, but have been produced on the other side by Cave
whether actually the composition of the pres- (Hist. Lit. t. i. p. 518) and accepted by Fabri-
byter of Jerusalem or of some other Hesychius cius. His chief work was a Universal History
it is difficult, if not impossible, to determine. in six books and in a synoptical form through
Tillemont feels no insuperable difficulty in a period of 1920 years, reaching from Belus,
assigning them all to the same author, but the reputed founder of the Assyrian empire,
confesses that fuller light might lead to a to the death of Anastasius I., a.d. 518. The
different conclusion. whole has perished except the initial portion
(i) In Leviticum Libri VII. Explanationum of bk. vi., which has been several times printed
Allegoricarum sive Commentarius, dedicated to under the title of Constantinopolis Origines, or
the deacon Eutychianus, is the most extensive Antiquitates. It was published by George
work extant under the name of Hesychius. Dousa, and ascribed to Georgius Codinus
It has frequently been printed. The earliest (Heidelberg, 1596), and subsequently by Meur-
editions are those of Basle (1527, fol.) and Paris sius, under the name of its real author, ap-
(1581, 8vo). It is in the various Bibliothecae pended to his de Viris Claris (Lugd. Bat.
Patrum, as that of Lvons, t. xii. p. 52, and the 1 61 3). It was followed by a supplement,
Vet. Pair. Bibl. oi Galland, t. xi. recording the reign of Justin, and the early
{2) Commentaries on the Psalms. — Harles and years of Justinian. This, as the work of a
Fabricius, Bibl. Graec. vol. vii. p. 549, speak of contemporary whose official position enabled
many portions of this work existing in MS., him to obtain accurate information, must have
especially one in the University Library of been of great historical value, and its loss is
Cambridge containing Pss. Ixxvii.-cvii. The very much to be regretted. Hesychius also
only portions printed are the Fragmenta in wrote a series of biographical notices of
Psalmos, extracted from the Greek Catena in learned men, which, going over very much the
Psalmos, with a Latin trans, by Balthazar same ground as the work of Diogenes Laertius,
Corderius. These are very sensible and useful, has been supposed to be an epitome of the
and lead us to wish for the publication of the Vitae Philosophorum. A comparison of the
whole. See Faulhaber, Hesych. Hierosol. In- two will shew that the differences are too great
terpr. Is. Proph. 1900 sqq. att. to Faulhaber
; to admit this idea. This work has been
in Theol. Quartalschr. 1901. The Commentary printed by Meursius (Lugd. Bat. 1613).
on the Psalms att. to Athanasius (Migne, Without sufficient grounds Hesychius Illustris
Patr. Gk. xxvii.) is by Hesychius, has been identified with the lejcicographer of
458 HIERACAS HIEROCLES
Alexandria. Cave, I.e. Suidas, s.v. Photius, appealed to what the same apostle had said
; ;

Cod. 69 ; Fabr. Bibl. Graec. t. vii. p. 544 " a little further on " (I. Cor. vii.), when he
;

Thorschmidius, de Hesychio Illustri, ap. wished all to be as himself and only tolerated
Orellium Hesychii Opera. [e-v.] marriage " because of fornication," i.e. as the
Hieracas (Hierax), an Egyptian teacher, lesser of two evils. Thus it appears that
from whom the sect of Hieracitae took their Hieracas believed in the Pauline origin of
name. Our knowledge of him is almost Hebrews, and his language seems to indicate
entirely derived from Epiphanius {Haer. 67, that in his sacred volume that epistle pre-
p. 709), who states that he was contemporary ceded I. Corinthians. He received also the
with the Egyptian bp. Meletius and Peter of pastoral epistles of St. Paul, for he appeals
Alexandria, and lived under Diocletian's to I. Tim. ii. 11 in support of another of his
persecution. This agrees very well with the doctrines, viz. that children dying before the
notice of him by Arius [vide infra), so that he use of reason cannot inherit the kingdom of
may be placed at the very beginning of the heaven and asks if he who strives cannot be
;

4th cent. Epiphanius treats him with more crowned unless he strive lawfully, how can he
respect than other founders of heretical sects, be crowned who has never stri\'en at all ?
and is willing to believe that he practised Arius, in his letter to Alexander in defence of
asceticism bond fide, which, in the case of his his views concerning our Lord's Person
followers, he counts but as hypocrisy. Ac- (Epiph. Haer. 69, 7, p. 732 ; Athan. de Syn.
cording to Epiphanius, Hieracas lived at i. 583 ; Hilar, de Trin. vi. 5, 12), contrasts his
Leontopolis, in Egypt, abstaining from wine own doctrine with that of Valentinus, of
and animal food ; and by his severity of life Manichaeus, of Sabellius, of Hieracas ; and
and the weight of his personal character did presumably all these teachers, by rejection of
'

much to gain reception for his doctrines, whom he hopes to establish his own orthodoxy,
especially among other Egyptian ascetics. were reputed as heretics. Hieracas, according
He had great ability and learning, being well to Arius, illustrated the relation between the
trained in Greek and Egyptian literature and first two Persons of the Godhead by the
science, and wrote several works in both comparison of a light kindled from another,
languages. Epiphanius ascribes to him a or of a torch divided into two, or, as Hilary
good knowledge of medicine, and, with more understands it, of a lamp with two wicks
hesitation, of astronomy and magic. He burning in the same oil.
practised the art of calligraphy, and is said to His doctrine concerning the Holy Spirit is
have lived to 90 years of age, and to have more questionable. He was influenced by the
retained such perfect eyesight as to be able to book of the Ascension of Isaiah, which he
continue the practice of his art to the time of received as authoritative. In it Isaiah is
his death. Besides composing hvmns, he represented as seeing in the seventh Heaven,
wrote several expository works on Scripture, on the right and left hand of God respectively,
of which one on the Hexaemeron is particular- two Beings like each other, one being the Son,
ly mentioned. It was, doubtless, in this work the other the angel of the Holy Spirit Who
that he put forward a doctrine censured by spake by the prophets. Hieracas inferred
Epiphanius, viz. the denial of a material that the latter Being, Who makes priestly
Paradise. Mosheim connects this with his intercession with groanings that cannot be
reprobation of marriage, imagining that it uttered, must be the same as Melchisedek, who
arose from the necessity of replying to the also was " made like unto the Son of God,"
objection that marriage was a state ordained and " who remaineth a priest for ever."
by God in Paradise. Neander, with more These tenets are ascribed to Hieracas by
probability, conceives that the notion of the Epiphanius, whose account is abridged by
essential evil of matter was at the bottom of Augustine {Haer. 47), by Joannes Damascenus
this as well as of other doctrines of Hieracas. (66), and by " Praedestinatus " (47). The
This would lead him to allegorize the Paradise continued existence of the sect is assumed in
of Genesis, interpreting it of that higher a story told by Rufinus {Hist. Man. 28, p. 196)
spiritual world from which the heavenly spirit of Macarius, who, when he had failed to
fell by an inclination to earthly matter. This confute the cunning arguments of a Hieracite
notion would also account for a second doc- heretic to the satisfaction of his hearers, van-
trine, which, according to Epiphanius, he held quislied him by successfully challenging him
in common with Origen, viz. that the future to a contest as to which could raise a dead
resurrection would be of the soul only, not of body. Rufinus does not make the story turn
the material body ;for all who counted it a on the fact that Hieracas denied the resur-
gain to the soul to be liberated by death from rection of the flesh. [G.S.]
the bonds of matter found it hard to believe Hierocles (1), a native of a small town in
that it could be again imprisoned in a body Caria, born at latest c. 275. He was a Neo-
at the resurrection. The same notion would platonic philosopher, to be distinguished from
explain the prominence which the mortifica- the 5th-cent. philosopher Hierocles (2).
tion of the body held in his practical teaching ;
Lactantius supposed him to have been in early
so that, according to this view, Hieracas would life a Christian, as he displayed in his writings
be referred to the class of Gnostic Encratites. such intimate knowledge of Scripture and Chris-
The most salient point in his practical teaching tian teaching. He must have been an active
was, that he absolutely condemned marriage, and able administrator, as he seems to have
holding that, though permitted under the old risen rapidly by his own exertions. In an in-
dispensation, since the coming of Christ no scription at Palmyra {Corp. Inscript. Lat. t. iii.
married person could inherit the kingdom of no. 133) his name occurs as ruler of that city
heaven. If it was objected that the apostle under Diocletian and Maximian, Galerius and
had said, " marriage is honourable in all," he Constantius being Caesars. Here he probably
HIEROCLES HIEROCLES 459
came in contact with Galerius and impressed Hierocles appears to have been a reconciler
the Caesar with a respect for his abihties on between the old and the new. Doubtless a
his famous Persian expedition, when the first sincere adherent of the heathen religion, its
seeds of the persecution were sown, 297-302. distinctive features melt away in his hands
The expression reiterated by Lactantius, that and his soft and tender tone recalls the accents
he was the " author and adviser of the per- of Christian piety, e.g. in the following pas-
secution," lends support to this view. He sages from his commentary on the Golden
was translated as prefect in 304 or 305 to Verses: " No proper cause is assignable for
Bithynia after the persecution broke out, and God to have created the world but His
in 305 or 306 was promoted to the government essential goodness. He is good by nature ;

of Alexandria, as is proved by the fact that and the good envies none in anything " (p.
Eusebius records the martyrdom of Aedesius 20, ed. Needham). " What offering can you
at Alexandria as occurring by his orders a make to God, out of material things, that
short time after that of Apphianus, which he shall be likened unto or suitable to Him ?
dates Apr. 2, 306 (cf. Eus. Mart. Pal. cc. iv. . .For, as the Pythagoreans say, God has no
.

V. ; Epiphanius, Haet. Ixviii. ; Assem. Mart. place in the world more fitted for Him than
Orient, 195).
ii. Hierocles seems to have a pure soul" (p. 24). '-''Strength dwells
there displayed the same bloodthirsty cruelty near necessity.' Our author adds this to shew
as marked another philosophic persecutor, that we must not measure our ability to
Theotecnus. He wrote a book against Chris- tolerate our friend by mere choice, but by our
tianity, entitled Aoyos (pi\a\y]6tq^ wpbs toi)? real strength, which is discovered only by
XpiffTiavovs, in which he brought forward actual necessity. We have all in time of need
various scriptural difficulties and alleged more strength than we commonly think "
contradictions and instituted comparisons (p. 52). " VVe must love the unworthy for the
between the life and miracles of Jesus Christ sake of their partnership in the same nature
and of Apollonius of Tyana. To this Eusebius with us " (p. 56). " We must be gentle to
rephed in a treatise yet extant. Liber contra those who speak falsely, knowing from what
Hieroclem, wherein he shews that Apollonius evils we ourselves have been cleansed. And . . .

was " so far from being comparable to Jesus gentleness is much aided by the confidence
Christ that he did not deserve to be ranked which comes from real knowledge " (p. no).
among the philosophers " (Du Pin, H. E. i. " Let us unite prayer with work. We must
155, art. "Eusebius "). Duchesne, in an acute pray for the end for which we work, and work
treatise on the then lately discovered works for the end for which we pray to teach us
;

of Macarius Magnes (Parish Klinksieck, 1877), this our author says, Go to your work, having
'

suggests that the work of Hierocles em- prayed the gods to accomplish it " (p. 172). '

bodied the objections drawn by Porphyry The reasons adduced by Hierocles for belief
from Holy Scripture, and that the work of in a future state are strictly moral, and quite
Macarius was a reply to them, and suggests remote from subtlety: "Except some part
that Hierocles wrote his book while ruling at of us subsists after death, capable of receiving
Palmyra before the persecution. Coming the ornaments of truth and goodness (and the
from a man in his position, it would carry rational soul has beyond doubt this capa-
great weight in the region of the Euphrates. bility), there cannot exist in us the pure desire
Macarius, therefore, as a dweller in that for honourable actions. The suspicion that
region (Duchesne, p. 11), and Eusebius, re- we may suffer annihilation destroys our con-
plied. Fleury, H. E. t. ii. 1. viii. § 30; Tillem. cern for such matters " (p. 76).
Mem. xiii. 333; Hist, des Emp. iv. 307; Not less noteworthy are his views respecting
Neander, H. E. t. i. pp. 201, 240, ed. Bohn ;
Providence. God, he says, is the sole eternal
Macar. Mag. ed. Blondel ; Mason, Dioclet. author of all things those Platonists who say
;

Peraec. pp. 58, 108 ; Herzog, Real-Encyc. that God could only make the universe by
art. "Hierocles." Dr. Gaisford, of Oxford, the aid of eternal matter are in error (p. 246,
pub. in 1852 the treatises of Eusebius against from the treatise Trepi Trpovoia^). Man has
Hierocles and against Marcellus. [g.t.s.] free will but since the thoughts of man
;

Hierocles (2), a philosopher, generally vacillate and sometimes forget God, man is
classed among theneo-Platonists, who lived at liable to sin what we call fate is the just and
:

Alexandria in the first half of 5th cent., and necessary retribution made by God, or by
delivered lectures of considerable merit. His those powers who do God's will, for man's
character is spoken of by Damascius (quoted actions, whether for merit or demerit (p. 256 ;

by Suidas) in high terms. When sojourning cf. p. 92). Hence the inequality in the lots
at Constantinople he came into collision with of men. Pain is the result of antecedent sin ;

the government (or, as Kuster interprets it, those who know this know the remedy, for
with the Christian authorities) and was severe- they will henceforward avoid wrongdoing and
ly beaten in the court of justice, possibly (as will not accuse God as if He were the essential
Zeller conjectures) for his adherence to the cause of their suffering (pp. 92, 94).
old rehgion. He was then banished, and The approximation of heathen philosophy
retired to Alexandria. His teacher in philo- to Christianity is the most interesting point to
sophy was Plutarch the neo-Platonist Theo- ; be noticed in connexion with Hierocles. He
sebius is mentioned as his disciple. never, in his extant works, directly mentions
His principal extant work is a commentary Christianity what degree of tacit opposition
;

on the Golden Verses attributed to Pythagoras. is implied in his philosophy is a difficult


His entire remains have been ed. bv bp. question. His philosophy has points more
Pearson, P. Needham (Camb. 1709), Gaisford specially characteristic of Platonism and
(1850), and Mullach (1853). See the last vol. neo-Platonism, e.g. his belief in the pre-
of Zeller's Greek Philosopky, pp. 681-687. existence of man and in the transmigration
460 HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS
of souls. With Porphyry and Jamblichus, when Jerome
first went to the East
in 373,
however, he denied that the souls of men could (xxii. 30), but, since he never mentions them
migrate into the bodies of animals. later, they probably died in the Gothic invasion
We conclude by quoting a passage on (377) when Stridon was destroyed. He had
Marriage shewing the singularly modern and a brother Paulinian, some 20 years younger
;

Christian type of his mind. " Marriage is (Ixxxii. 8), who from 385 lived constantly with
expedient, first, because it produces a truly him. He was brought up in comfort, if not
divine fruit, namely children, our helpers in luxury (xxii. 30) and received a good
alike when we are young and strong, and education. He was in a grammar school,
when we are old and worn. But even probably at Rome, and about 17 years old,
. . .

apart from this, wedded life is a happy lot. when the death of the emperor Julian (363)
A wife by her tender offices refreshes was announced (Comm. on Habakkuk, i. 10).
those who are wearied with external toil she Certainly it was not much later than this
;

makes her husband forget those troubles that he was sent with his friend Bonosus
which are never so active and aggressive as to complete his education at Rome, and they
in the midst of a solitary and unfriended probably lived together there. The chief
life; sometimes questioning him on his study of those days was rhetoric, to which
business pursuits, or referring some domestic Jerome applied himself diligently, attending
matter to his judgment, and taking counsel the law courts and hearing the best pleaders
with him upon it giving a savour and
: (Comm. on Gal. ii. 13). Early in his stay at
pleasure to life by her unstrained cheerfulness Rome he lived irregularly and fell into sin
and alacrity. Then again in the united (Ep. vi. 4, xiv. 6, xlviii. 20). But he was
exercise of religious sacrifice, in her conduct drawn back, and finally cast in his lot with'
as mistress of the house in the absence of the Christian church. He describes how on
her husband, when the family has to be held Sundays he used to visit, with other young
in order not without a certain ruling spirit, men of like age and mind, the tombs of the
in her care for her servants, in her careful martyrs in the Catacombs (Comm. in Ezek. c.
tending of the sick, in these and other things 40, p. 468) and this indicates a serious bent,
;

too many to be recounted, her influence is which culminated in his baptism at Rome
notable. . Splendid dwellings, marbles and while Liberius was pope, i.e. before 366.
. .

precious stones and myrtle groves are but While there he acquired a considerable library
poor ornaments to a family. But the heaven- (Ep. xxii. 30) which he afterwards carried
blessed union of a husband and wife, who wherever he went. On the termination of
have all, even their bodies and souls, in his studies in Rome he determined to go with
common, who rule their house and bring up Bonosus into Gaul, for what purpose is un-
their children well, is a more noble and ex- known. They probably first returned home
cellent ornament as indeed Homer said.
; and lived together for a time in Aquileia,
. . .

Nothing is so burdensome but that a husband or some other town in N. Italy. Certainly
and wife can easily bear it when they are in they at this time made the acquaintance of
harmony together, and willing to give their Rufinus (iii. 3) and that friendship began
common strength to the task." [j.r.m.] between him and Jerome which afterwards
Hieronymus (4) (Jerome), St. The full turned out so disastrously to both (see
name is Eusebius Hieronymus. Augustine to Jerome, Ep. ex.). Hearing that
Among the best accounts of St. Jerome are they were going into Gaul, the country of
:

Saint Jerome, la Societe chretienne a Rome Hilary, Rufinus begged Jerome to copy for
et V emigration romaine en Terre Sainte, par him Hilary's commentary on the Psalms and
M. Amedee Thierry (Paris, 1867), and Hier- his book upon the Councils (Ep. v. 2) and ;

onymus sein Leben und Werken von Dr. Otto this may have fostered Jerome's tendency
Zockler (Gotha, 1865) the former gives a towards ecclesiastical literature, which was
;

vivid, artistic, and, on the whole, accurate henceforward the main pursuit of his life.
picture of his life, with large extracts in the This vocation declared itself during his stay
original from his writings, the latter a critical in Gaul. He went with his friend to several
and comprehensive view of both. These con- parts of Gaul, staying longest at Treves, then
tain all that is best in previous biographers, the seat of government. But his mind was
such as the Benedictine Martianay (Paris, occupied with scriptural studies, and he made
1706), Sebastian Dolci (Ancona, 1750), Engel- his first attempt at a commentary. It was
stoft (Copenhagen, 1797) to which may be on the prophet Obadiah, which he interpreted
;

added notices of Jerome in the Acta Sanctorum, mystically (pref. to Comm. on Obadiah).
Biblia Sacra, Du Pin's and Ceillier's Histories The friends returned to Italy. Eusebius,
of Ecclesiastical Writers, the excellent article bp. of Vercellae, had a few years before re-
in the D. of G. and R. Biogr., the Life of turned from banishment in the East, bringing
Jerome prefixed to Vallarsi's ed. of his works, with him Evagrius, a presbyter (afterwards
which has a singular value from its succinct bp.) of Antioch, who during his stay in Italy
narrative and careful investigation of dates. had played a considerable part in church
He was born c. 346 at Stridon, a town near affairs (Ep. i. 15). He seems to have had a
Aquileia, of Catholic Christian parents (Pref. great influence over Jerome at this time and ;

to Job), who, according to the custom then either with him or about the same time he
common, did not have him baptized in settled at Aquileia, and from 370 to 373 the
infancy. They were not very wealthy, but chief scene of interest lies there, where a com-
possessed houses (Ep. Ixvi. 4) and slaves pany of young men devoted themselves to
(cont. Ruf. i. c. 30), and lived in close intimacy sacred studies and the ascetic life. It included
with the richer family of Bonosus, Jerome's the presbyter Chromatins (afterwards bp. of
foster-brother [Ep. iii. 5). They were living Aquileia), his brother Eusebius, with Jovinus
BlEftONYMUS HIERONYMUS 461

the archdeacon; Rufinus, Bonosus, Heliodorus drink, since the monks even when sick use
(afterwards bp. of Altinum), the monk Chryso- cold water, and it is thought a luxury if they
gonus, the subdeacon Niceas, and Hylas the ever partake of cooked food. Through fear of
freedman of the wealthy Roman lady Melania; hell, I had condemned myself to prison ;I
all of whom are met with later in Jerome's his- had scorpions and wild beasts for my only
tory. They were knit together by close friend- companions." His literary talent was by no
ship and common pursuits ; and the presence means idle during this period. He wrote
of Evagrius, who knew the holy places and letters to his friends in Italy, to Florentius at
hermitages of the East, gave a special direc- Jerusalem (v. -xvii.), and to Heliodorus (xiv.)
tion to their ascetic tendencies. For a time on the Praises of the Desert, chiding him for
all went well. The baptism of Rufinus took not having embraced the perfect life of soli-
place now (Ruf. Apol. i. 4). It was Jerome's tude. A Jew who had become a Christian
fortune to become, wherever he lived, the was his instructor in Hebrew (xviii. 10),
object of great affection, and also of great ani- and Jerome obtained from one of the
mosity. Whatever was the cause {Ep. iii. 3), sect of the Nazarenes at Beroea the Gospel
the society at Aquileia suddenly dispersed. according to the Hebrews, which he copied,
The friends went (probably early in 373) in and afterwards translated into Greek and
different directions. Bonosus retired to an Latin {de Vir. III. 2, 3). He was frequently
island in the Adriatic and lived as a hermit visited by Evagrius (Ep. vii. i), who also
(vii. 3). Rufinus went to the East in the acted as the intermediary of his communica-
train of Melania. Jerome, with Heliodorus, tion with his friends in Aquileia, and later with
Innocentius, and Hylas, accompanied Eva- Damasus at Rome (xv. 5). But again,
grius to Palestine. Leaving his parents, owing chiefly to his vehement feelings and
sister, relations and home comforts (xxii. expressions, he made enemies. He was driven
30), but taking his library, he travelled away by the ill-will of his brother-monks. At
through Thrace, Pontus, Bithynia, Galatia, first, as we see from his letter to Heliodorus,
Cappadocia and Cilicia, to Antioch. The he was satisfied with his condition ; but
journey was exhausting, and Jerome had a his last years in the desert were embittered
long period of ill-health, culminating in a by theological strife, relating to the conflicts
fever. Innocentius and Hylas died from the in the church at Antioch, from which he was
same fever. Heliodorus went to Jerusalem. glad to escape. The see of Antioch was
During his illness {ib.} Jerome had his bent claimed by three bishops, Vitalis the Arian,
towards scriptural studies and asceticism con- Meletius, acknowledged by Basil and the
firmed. While his friends stood by his bed orthodox bishops of the East (Basil, Ep. 156,
expecting his death, he felt himself, in a to Evagrius), and Paulinus, supported by pope
trance, carried before the throne of God, Damasus and the stronger anti- Arian party of
and condemned as being no Christian but a Rome. Between Meletius and Paulinus the
Ciceronian, who preferred worldly literature dispute was mainly verbal, but none the less
to Christ. From this time, though he con- bitter. Jerome complains that theMeletians,
tinued to quote the classics profusely, his not content with his holding the truth, treated
literary interest was wholly with the Bible and him as a heretic if he did not do so in their
church writings. It seems likely that, as words (Ep. XV. 3). He appealed to Damasus,
soon as his health was restored, he determined strongly protesting his submission to Rome
to embrace the solitary life. He wrote to (xv. xvi.). Finding his position more and more
Theodosius (ii.), who was apparently a kind of difficult, he wrote to Marcus, the chief presby-
chief of the hermits in the desert of Chalcis, ter of the monks of Chalcis (xvii.), in the winter
asking to be received among them, and thither of 378, professing his soundness in the faith,
he proceeded about the autumn of 374. declaring that he was ready, but for illness, to
He was now about 28 years old. The desert depart, and begging the hospitality of the desert
of Chalcis, where he lived for 4 or 5 years till the winter was past. Proceeding in the
(374-379), was in the country of the Saracens, spring of 379 to Antioch, he stayed there till
in the E. of Syria (v.). It was peopled by 380, uniting himself to the party of Paulinus,
hermits, who lived mainly in solitude, but had and by him was ordained presbyter against his
frequent intercourse among themselves and a will. He never celebrated the Eucharist or
little with the world. They lived under some officiated as presbyter, as appears from many
kind of discipline, with a ruling presbyter passages in his works. There are extant no
named Marcus (xvii.). Jerome lived in a letters and only one work of this period, the
cell, and gained his own living (xvii. 3)
;
dialogue of an orthodox man with a Luciferian.
probably, according to the recommendation Lucifer of Cagliari having taken part in the
he gives later to Rusticus (cxxv.), cultivat- appointment of Paulinus, a corrective was
ing a garden, and making baskets of rushes, needed for the more extreme among the
or, more congenially, copying books. He Western party at Antioch ; and this was
describes his life in writing to Eustochium given in Jerome's dialogue, which is clear,
(xxii. 7), 9 or 10 years later, as one of moderate, and free from the violence of his
spiritual struggles. " I sat alone ; I was later controversial works. It exhibits a
filled with bitterness: my limbs were un- considerable knowledge of church history, and
comely and rough with sackcloth, and my contains the account of the council of Arimi-
squalid skin became as black as an Ethiopian's. num, with the famous words (c. 19) :
" In-
Every day I was in tears and groans and if gemuit totus orbis et Arianum se esse miratus
;

ever the sleep which hung upon my eyelids est." In 380 Jerome went to Constanti-
overcame my resistance, I knocked against the nople until the end of 381. He sought the
ground my bare bones, which scarce clung instruction of Gregory Nazianzen, who had
together. I say nothing of my meat and taken charge of the orthodox church there
;

462 HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS


in 379, allusions in his works
and frequent pref. to vol. X.; also Murray's Illus. B. D.
witness to his profiting greatly from his mas- (1908), art. Vulgate). He also, at the request
ter's mode of interpreting Scripture. He of Damasus and others, wrote many short
calls him " praeceptor meus " (de Vir. III. 117) exegetical treatises, included among his letters
and appeals to his authority in his comment- (on Hosanna, xix. xx. Prodigal Son, xxi. O.T.
; ;

aries and (Comm. on Ephes. v. 3 Epp.


letters ; Names of God, xxv. Hallehiia and Amen,
;

1. I, lii. 8, etc.). He was also acquainted with xxvi.; Sela and Diapsalma, xxviii.; Ephod and
Gregory of Nyssa [de Vir. III. 128). He was Seraphim, xxix. Alphabetical Psalms, xxx.
;

attacked, while at Constantinople, with a " The Bread of Carefulness," xxxiv.). Hebegan
complaint in the eyes, arising from overwork, also his studies on the original of O.T. by collat-
which caused him to dictate the works he now ing the Gk. versions of Aquila and the LXX
wrote. This practice afterwards became with the Heb. (xxxii., xxxvi. 12), and was thus
habitual to him (pref. to Comm. on Gal. further confirmed in the convictions which led
iii.), though he did not wholly give up writing to the Vulgate version. He translated for Da-
with his own hand and he contrasts the
; masus the Commentary of Origen on the Song
imperfections of the works which he dictated of Songs (vol. x. p. 500), and began his trans-
with the greater elaboration he could give lation of the work of Didymus, the blind
those he himself wrote. He wrote no letters Origenistic teacher of Alexandria, on the Holy
here but his literary activity was great. He
;
Spirit, which he did not complete till after his
translated the Chronicle of Eusebius, a large settlement at Bethlehem, probably because of
work, which embraces the chronology from the increasing suspicions and enmity of clergy
the creation to a.d. 330, Jerome adding the and people, whom he speaks of as the senate of
events of the next 50 years. He translated the Pharisees, against all that had any con-
the Homilies of Origen on Jer. and Ezk., pos- nexion with Origen (pref. to Didymus on the
sibly also on Isa., and wrote a short treatise for Holy Spirit, vol. ii. 105), which cause also
Damasus on theinterpretations of the Seraphim prevented him continuing the translation of
in Isa. vi., which is improperly placed among Origen's Commentaries, begun at Constanti-
the letters (£/5. xviii.). These works mark the nople. Jerome was Origen's vehement cham-
epoch when he began to feel the importance of pion and the contemptuous opponent of his
Origen as a church- writer, though daring even impugners. " The city of Rome," he says,
then to differ from him in doctrine, and also " consents to his condemnation not be- . . .

to realize the imperfections of the existing cause of the novelty of his doctrines, not
versions of the Scriptures. In the treatise on because of heresy, as the dogs who are mad
the Seraphim, and again in the preface to the against him now pretend but because they
;

Chronicle, we find him contrast the various could not bear the glory of his eloquence and
Gk. versions of O.T., studies which eventually his knowledge, and because, when he spoke,
forced on him the necessity of a translation they were all thought to be dumb " (Ep.
direct from the Hebrew. What were his xxxiii. 4).
relations to the council of Constantinople in Asceticism. —
The other chief object of his
381 we do not know. It is certain, however, life increased this enmity, although it also
that pope Damasus desired his presence in made great advances during his stay at Rome.
Rome at the council of 382, which reviewed the Nearly fifty years before, Athanasius and the
Acts of that council, and that he went in the monk Peter (334) had sown the seeds of
train of bps. Paulinus of Antioch and Epipha- asceticism at Rome by their accounts of the
nius of Constantia (Salamis) in Cyprus (cxxiii. monasteries of Nitria and the Thebaid. The
10; cxxvii. 7). declining state of the empire had mean-
Bible Work. —
His stay in Rome, from the while predisposed men either to selfish luxury
spring of 382 to Aug. 385, was a very eventful or monasticism. Epiphanius, with whom
and decisive period in his life. He made many Jerome now came to Rome, had been trained
friends and many enemies his knowledge and
; by the hermits Hilarion and Hesychas ;

reputation as a scholar greatly increased, and he was, with Paulinus, the guest of the
his experience of Rome determined him to wealthy and noble Paula (cviii. 5), the heiress
give himself irrevocably and exclusively to his of the Aemilian race; and thus Jerome was
two great interests, scriptural study and the introduced to one who became his life-long
promotion of asceticism. He undertook, at the friend and his chief support in his labours.
request of Damasus, a revision of the version She had three daughters Blessila, whose
:

of the Psalms (vol. x. col. 121). He translated death, after a short and austere widowhood,
from the LXXand his new version was used
; was so eventful to Jerome himself; Julia
in the Roman church till the pontificate of Eustochium, who first among the Roman
Pius V. He, also at the request of Damasus, nobility took the virgin's vow and -Paulina, ;

revised the N.T., of which the old Versio Itala who married Jerome's friend Pammachius.
was very defective. The preface addressed to These formed part of a circle of ladies who
Damasus (ih. col. 557) is a good critical docu- gradually gathered round the ascetic teacher
ment, pointing out that the old version had of scriptural lore. Among them were Mar-
been varied by transcribers, and asking, "If CELLA, whose house on the Aventine was their
any one has the right version, which is it ? " It meeting-place her young friend Principia
;

was intended as a preface to the Gospels only; (cxxvii.) ;her sister the recluse Asella, the
but from the record of his works in the list of confidant of Jerome's complaints on leaving
ecclesiastical writers (de Vir. III. 135), which Rome (xlv.) Lea, already the head of a
;

states that he had restored the N.T. according kind of convent, whose sudden death was
to the original Greek, as well as from other announced whilst the friends were reading
passages (e.g. Ep. xxvii. 3), we infer that the the Psalms (xxiii.) Furia, the descendant of
;

whole version was completed (see Vallarsi's CamiUus, sister-in-law to Blesilla, and her
"

HIERONYMUS HIERONTMUS 463


mother Titiana Marcellina and Felicitas, to
; moderate his language (xxvii. 2), continued to
whom Jerome's last adieus were sent on use the most insulting expressions towards all
leaving Rome (xlv.) ;
perhaps also, though who opposed him. It is not surprising that the
she is not named till later, the enthusiastic Roman church should have deemed him un-
Fabiola, less steady, but more eager than the fitted to be its head, and that Jerome himself
rest (Ixxvii.). These ladies, all of the highest should, in his calmer reflections, have felt that
patrician families, were already disposed to Rome was ill-suited to him, and that in
the ascetic life. Contact with the Eastern attempting, with his temper and habits, to
bishops added a special interest in Palestine ;
carry out his conception of Christianity in
and the presence of Jerome confirmed both Rome he had been vainly trying " to sing the
these tendencies. He became the centre of Lord's song in a strange land "( xlv. 6) Siricius,
.

a band of friends who, withdrawn from a the successor of Damasus, had no sympathy
political and social life which they regarded as with Jerome either then or in the subsequent
hopelessly corrupt, gave themselves to the Origenistic controversy. The party of friends
study of Scripture and to works of charity. on the Aventine was broken up. J erome coun-
They knew Greek learned Hebrew that they
; sels Marcella (xliv.) to leave Rome and seek
might sing the Psalms in the original learned; religious seclusion in the country. Paula and
by heart the writings of their teacher (Ixxvii. Eustochium preferred to go with him to Pales-
9); held daily meetings whereat he expounded tine. In Aug. 385 Jerome embarked, with all
the Scriptures (xxiii. i), and for them he wrote that was dearest to him, at Portus, and in his
many of his exegetical treatises. Theprinciples touching and instructive letter to Asella (xlv.)
heinstilledintotheirmindsmaybeseeninmany bade a final farewell to Rome. Accompanied
of his letters of this period, which were at once by his brother Paulinian and his friend Vincen-
copied and eagerly seized both by friends and tius(co«/. Ruf. iii. 22), he sailed direct to Antioch.
enemies. The treatise which especially illus- Paula and Eustochium (Ep. cviii., where all
trates his teaching at this time is addressed to these incidents are narrated), leaving Paulina,
Eustochium on the Preservation of Virginity then of marriageable age, and her young
(xxii.). Jerome's own experience in the desert, brother Toxotius, embarked at the same time,
his anti-Ciceronian dream at Antioch, his but visited Epiphanius in Cyprus on their way.
knowledge of the desert monks, of whom he The friends were reunited at Antioch, as
gives a valuable description, were here used winter was setting in. Paula would brook no
in favour of the virgin and ascetic life the ; delay, and, despite the inclemency of the
extreme fear of impurity contrasts strangely season, they started at once for Palestine.
with the gross suggestions in every page it ; They visited Sarepta, Acre, Caesarea, Joppa,
contains such a depreciation of the married Lydda, and Emmaus, arriving at Jerusalem
state, the vexations of which ("uteri tumentes, early in 386. The city was moved at their
infantium vagitus ") are only relieved by coming, and the proconsul prepared a
vulgar and selfish luxury, that almost the only splendid reception for them in the Praetorium ;

advantage allowed it is that by it virgins are but they only stayed to see the holy places,
brought into the world ; and the vivid and, after visiting spots of special interest in

descriptions of Roman life the pretended the S. of Palestine, journeyed on into Egypt.
virgins, the avaricious and self-indulgent There the time was divided between the two
matrons, the dainty, luxurious, and rapacious great objects of Jerome's life, the study of

clergy forcible as they are, lose some of their Scripture and the promotion of asceticism.
value by their appearance of caricature. An- At Alexandria he sat, though already grey-
other treatise written during this period, haired (Ixxxiv. 3), at the feet of Didymus,
against the layman Helvidius, the pupil of the great Origenistic teacher, whom, in con-
Auxentius of Milan, on the perpetual virginity trast to his blindness, Jerome delights to
of Mary, though its main points are well speak of as " the seer." (See in his praises
argued, exhibits the same fanatical aversion the preface to the commentary on Ephesians.)
to marriage, combined with a supercilious Jerome had already, as we have seen, trans-
disregard of his opponent which was habitual lated in part his book on the Holy Spirit and ;

to Jerome. [Helvidius.] now, at the request of his distinguished pupil,


A crisis in Jerome's fortunes came with the Didymus composed his Commentary on
end of 384. Damasus, who had been pope for Hosea and Zechariah (Hieron. pref. to Hosea,
nearly 20 years, was dying, and amongst his and de Vir. III. 109). Pausing at Alexandria
possible successors Jerome could not escape only 30 days, they turned to the monasteries
mention. He had, as he tells us, on first of Nitria, where they were received with great
coming to Rome, been pointed out as the honour. At one time they were almost per-
future pope (xlv. 3). But he was entirely suaded to remain in the Egyptian desert, but
unfitted by character and habit of mind for the attractions of the holy places of Palestine
an office which has always required the prevailed and sailing from Alexandria to
;

talents of the statesman and man of the world, Majoma, they settled at Bethlehem, in the
rather than those of the student, and he had autumn of 386. There Jerome lived the
offended every part of the community. The remaining 34 years of his life, pursuing
general lay feeling was strongly opposed to unremittingly and with the utmost success
asceticism (xxvii. 2). At the funeral of Blesilla the two great objects of his life.
(xxxix. 4) the rumour was spread that she had Bethlehem, First Period, 386-392. Monas-

been killed by the excessive austerities enjoined teries. Their first work was to establish them-
upon her the violent grief of her mother was selves at Bethlehem. A monastery and a
;

taken as a reproach to the ascetic system, and convent were built, over which Jerome and
the cry was heard, "The monks to the Tiber! Paula respectively presided {Ep. cviii. 14, 19).
Jerome, though cautioned by his friends to There was a church in which they met 00
;

464 HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS


Sundays, and perhaps oftener (cxlvii.) ; and occurred in translation or exposition, he
a hospice for pilgrims, of whom a vast number obtained further aid. For the book of Job
came from all parts to visit the holy places he paid a teacher to come to him from Lydda
(Epp. xlvi. Ixvi. ;cont. Vigilantium, 13, 14). (pref. to Job, vol. ix. col. 1140) ; for the
These institutions were mainly supported by Chaldee of Tobit he had a rabbi from Tiberias
Paula, though, towards the end of her life, (pref. to Tobit, vol. x.). The Chronicles
when she by her profusion had become poor, he went over word by word with a doctor
their support fell upon Jerome, who, for this of law from Tiberias (pref. to Chron.).
purpose, sold his estate in Pannonia (Ep. The great expense entailed was no doubt in
Ixvi.). He lived in a cell (cv. and cont. part defrayed by Paula. At a later time,
Joan. Jerus.), in or close to the monastery, when his resources failed. Chromatins of
surrounded by his library, to which he con- Aquileia, and Heliodorus of Altinum, sup-
tinually added, as is shewn by his constant ported the scribes who assisted him (pref. to
reference to a great variety of authors, sacred Esther, addressed to Chrom. and Hel.).
and profane, and by his account of obtaining a Bible Work. —
The results of his first six
copy of the Hexapla from the library at years' labours may be thus summed up. The
Caesarea (Comni. on Titus, c. 3, p. 734)- He commentary on Eccles. and the translation of
describes himself as living very moderately Didymus on the Holy Spirit were completed
on bread and vegetables (Ep. Ixxix. 4) he ; commentaries were written on Gal. Eph. Tit.
was not neglectful of his person, but recom- and Philemon the version of N.T. begun in
;

mended a moderate neatness of dress (lii. Rome was revised a treatise on Pss. x.-xvi.
;

9, Ix. 10). We do not read of any special was written; and translations made of Origen's
austerities beyond the fact of his seclusion Commentaries on St. Luke and the Psalmsr
from the world, which he speaks of as a Jerome, who had long before felt the great
living in the fields and in solidude, that he importance for scriptural studies of a know-
might mourn for his sins and gain Christ's ledge of the localities (pref. to Chron.),
mercy {cont. Joan. Jerus. 41). He did not turned to account his travels in Palestine
officiate in the services, but his time was in his work on the names of Hebrew places,
greatly absorbed by the cares (Ep. cxiv. i) and mainly translated from Eusebius, and gave
discipline (cxlvii.) of the monastery and by the to the world what may be called " Chips from
crowds of monks and pilgrims who flocked to his Workshop," in the book on Hebrew proper
the hospice (Ixvi. 14 adv. Ruf. i. 31).
; He ex- names and the Hebrew questions on Gen.,
pounded the Scriptures daily to the brethren a work which he seems to have intended to
in the monastery. Sacred studies were his carry on in the other books as a pendant to
main pursuit, and his diligence isalmost incred- his translations. Further, as a preparatory
ible. " He is wholly absorbed in reading," says work to the Vulg., he had revised the Latin
Sulpicius ;
" he takes no rest by day or by version of O.T. then current (which was
night he is ever reading or writing something." imperfectly made from the LXX), by a com-
;

He wrote, or rather dictated, with great rapidity. parison of Origen's Hexapla (pref. to Joshua,
He was believed at times to have composed vol. ix. 356 pref. to Chron. vol. ix. col. 1394
; ;

i.ooolines of his commentaries in a day (pref. to pref. to Job, vol. ix. col. 1142 Ep. Ixxi. ad
;

bk. ii. of Comm. on Ephes. in vol. vii. col. 507). Lucinium). This work, though not mentioned
He wrote almost daily to Paula and Eusto- in the Catalogue (de Vir. III. 135), certainly
chium (de Vir. III. 135) and, though many of existed. Jerome used it in his familiar
;

his letters were mere messages, yet almost expositions each day (cont. Ruf. ii. 24). Au-
all were at once published (Ep. xlix. 2), either gustine had heard of it and asked to see it
by friends or enemies. There were many in- (Ep. cxxxiv., end), but it had, through fraud
terruptions. Besides the excessive number of or neglect, been lost and all that remains of
;

ordinary pilgrims, persons came from all parts, it is Job, the Psalms, and the preface to the
and needed special entertainment. The agi- books of Solomon (vol. x.). The Vulgate
tated state of the empire also was felt in the itself was in preparation, as we find from the
hermitage of Bethlehem. The successive in- Catalogue but as it was not produced for
;

vasions of the Huns (Ep. Ixxvii. 8) and the some years, what had been done thus far was
Isaurians (cxiv.) created a panic in Palestine, evidently only preliminary and imperfect work.
so that, in 395, ships had been provided at Besides his work on the Scriptures, Jerome
Joppa to carry away the virgins of Bethlehem, had designed a vast scheme of church history,
who hurried to the coast to embark, when the from the beginning to his own time, giving
danger passed away. These invasions caused the lives of all the most eminent men and ;

great lack of means at Bethlehem (cxiv. i), so as a preliminary to this, and in furtherance
that Jerome and his friends had to sell all to of asceticism, he wrote Lives of Malchus
continue the work. Amidst such difficulties his and HiLARiON. The minuteness of detail in
great literary works were accomplished. Im- these works would have made a church
mediately on settling at Bethlehem, he set to history on such a scale impossible and the ;

work to perfect his knowledge of Hebrew with credulity they shew throws doubt on Jerome's
the aid of a Jew named Bar Anina (called Bar- capacity for such work.
abbas by Jerome's adversaries, who conceived A far more important work for the purposes
that through this teacher his version was tainted of the church historian is the book which is
with Judaism; see Ruf. Apol. ii. 12). Their variously called the " Catalogue of Church
interviews took place at night (Ep. Ixxxiv.), Writers," the " Book on Illustrious Men," or
each being afraid of the suspicions their inter- the " Epitaphion " (though it includes men
course might cause. He also learned Chaldee, then living). Some portions are taken from
but less thoroughly (pref. to Daniel, vol. ix. Eusebius, but the design and most of the
col. 1358). When any unusual difficulty details are original. It includes the writers of
HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS 465

N.T., and church teachers of East and West regarded as preliminary to it. It was begun
up to Jerome's own time, and even men within the first few years. But, in so elabor-
accounted heretics and non-Christians like ate a work, it was impossible that the first
Seneca, whose works were of importance to copies should be perfect. It is probable that
the progress of human thought. the whole, or larger part, was gone through
The letter which Jerome wrote in the name at an early date and given to his friends or
of Paula and Eustochium to Marcella at the public after a more mature revision,
Rome [Ep. xlvi.), the only letter preserved according as his health or courage allowed.
from these first six years, expresses an en- He distinctly purposed to publish it from the
thusiastic view of their privileges in reading first. Yet the actual publication was made
the Scriptures in the tongue and country in a fragmentary and hesitating manner.
in which they were written. The crowds who At times he speaks of portions as extorted
came from all parts seem to them to be so from him by the earnest requests of his friends
many choirs, engaged in services of praise, (pref. to Gen. vol. ix. etc.). Some parts he
each in their own tongue. The very plough- represents as done in extreme haste the ;

men chant Hallelujahs. Far from the Baby- books of Solomon as the work of three days
lon of Rome, they associate with the saints (pref. in vol. ix. col. 1307) Tobit and Judith
;

of Scripture and find in the holy places the were each that of a single day. He shews
gate of heaven. This view of Palestine is in his prefaces extreme sensitiveness to attacks
always present to Jerome, however much he upon his work, and speaks of it often as an
has to confess the actual secularization of ungrateful task. Of the Apocrypha he trans-
Jerusalem (Iviii. 4) and it makes his Biblical
;
lated only parts, and these very cursorily
work not merely one of learning but of piety. (pref. to Tobit, vol. x.), doubtless because of

Second Period, 393-404. Private letters of his comparative indifference to the Apocrypha,
Jerome abound during this period, and illus- his opinion of which is quoted in Art. vi. of
trate his personal history. the 39 Articles, from the preface to the Books
To this period belong the many external of Solomon (vol. ix. ed. 1308). Samuel and
difficulties at Bethlehem already mentioned. Kings were published first, then Job and the
During almost the whole of 398 Jerome was Prophets, then Ezra, Nehemiah and Genesis.
ill, and again in 404-405 (Ixxiv. 6, cxiv. i). All these were finished in or before 393 but ;

He was disturbed also by the controversy or here occurred a break, due partly, no doubt,
schism between the monks of Bethlehem and to unsettlement and panic caused by the
the bp. of Jerusalem ;and an injury to his invasion of the Huns in 395. In 396 the work
hand prevented his writing. Poverty was was resumed at the entreaty of Chromatins
also overtaking him. Paula had spent her and Heliodorus, who sent him money to sup-
fortune in lavish charity, and Jerome sent his port the necessary helpers (pref. to Books of
brother Paulinianus to their former home to Solomon). The Books of Solomon were then
sell the remains of their property to support completed (398) and the preface indicates an
the monasteries (Ixvi. 14). The sad quarrel intention to continue the work more systeni-
between Jerome and Rufinus began in 394 ;
atically. But the ill-feeling excited by his
see under the controversies [infra] which oc- translation made him unwilling to continue,
cupied so much of this period. and his long illness in 398 intervened. He
Commentaries. — Jerome had begun his com-
mentaries on the Minor Prophets in 391 (de
tells Lucinius that he had then given his ser-
vants the whole except the Octateuch to copy
Vir. III. 135)
; they form four books, and were (Ep. xlix. 4). But, from whatever cause, the
published at long intervals up to 406. In work was not resumed till 403-404, in which
397 he wrote his commentary on Matthew, years the remainder was completed, namely,
the last on the N.T. It was finished, with the last four books of Moses, Joshua and
great haste and eagerness (Ep. Ixxiii. 10), in Judges, Ruth and Esther. His friends col-
Lent 398, as he was recovering from an illness. lected the translations into one volume, and
After a long interval the commentary on the title of Vulgate, which had hitherto
Isaiah followed, and thereafter he wrote upon applied to the version before in use (pref. to
the Great Prophets only. Ezk. vol. ix. col. 995, pref. to Esther, vol. ix.

The Vulgate. That which we now call the 1503), in time came to belong to an edition
Vulgate, and which is in the main the work of which is in the main the work of Jerome.
Jerome, was during his life the Bible of the Controversies. —
Controversial works at this
learned and only by degrees won general period occupied a share of Jerome's energies
acceptance. The editio vulgata in previous out of all proportion to their importance.
use was a loose translation from the LXX, —
Against Jovinian. Jovinian was a Roman
almost every copy varying. J erome had begun monk, originally distinguished by extreme
very early to read the O.T. in Gk. Here the who had adopted freer opinions.
asceticism,
same difficulty met him. The LXX version He the monastic dress and lived like
put off
was confronted, in Origen's Hexapla, with The book of Jovinian was sent
other men.
those of Theodotion, Aquila, and Symmachus, to Jerome about the end of 393, and he at
and with two others called Quinta and Sexta. once answered it in two books. He warmly
Where they differed, who was to decide ? attacks Jovinian as a renegade and as a dog
This question is asked by Jerome as early as who has returned to his vomit.
the preface to the Chronicle of Eusebius (381) —
Origenism. The second great controversy
and was constantly repeated in defence of in which Jerome was now engaged arose about
his translation. He seems to have distinctly Origenism, which embraces in its wide sweep
contemplated this work from the moment of Epiphanius, bp. of Cyprus, John, bp. of Jeru-
his settlement at Bethlehem, and a great deal salem, Theophiius, bp. of Alexandria, St. John
of the labour of his first years there may be Chrysostom, the pope Anastasius, and above
|

30
466 HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS
all Jerome's former friend Rufinus a con- — apparently in 393. In 394 Epiphanius, bp.
troversy by which the churches of the East of Salamis in Cyprus, who in his book on
and the West were long and deeply agitated. heresies had formally included the doctrines
It divides itself, as far as Jerome is concerned, of Origen, visited Jerusalem, and strife broke
into two distinct parts the first represented
: out in the church of the Resurrection, where
by his writing against John of Jerusalem, and Epiphanius's pointed sermon against Origen-
extending from 494-499, when peace was made ism was taken as reflecting so directly upon
between them the second represented by
; John that the bishop sent his archdeacon to
three books directed against Rufinus, the first remonstrate and stop him. John, after he
two written in 401, the third in 402. had delivered a long sermon against Anthro-
Jerome's own relation to Origen is not pomorphism, was requested by Epiphanius,
difficult to understand, though it laid him amidst the ironical applause of the people, to
open to the charge of inconsistency. He had condemn Origenism with the same earnest-
become acquainted with his works during ness ; and then Epiphanius came to the
his first enthusiasm for Greek ecclesiastical monastery at Bethlehem declaring John a
learning and had recognized his as the greatest heretic, and, after attempting to elicit some
name in Christian literature, worthy of com- anti-Origenistic confession from the bishop,
parison with the greatest of classical times finally at night left his house, where he had
(see esp. Ep. xxxiii.). The literary interest been a guest, for the monastery. Epiphanius,
was to Jerome, then as at all times, more than convinced that John was on the verge of
the dogmatic deeply impressed by the genius heresy, advised Jerome and his friends to
;

and learning of the great Alexandrine, his separate themselves from their bishop and
;

praise, like his subsequent blame, was without provided for the ministrations of their church
reason or moderation. He spoke with entire by ordaining Jerome's brother Paulinian.
commendation of his commentaries, and even J ohnnowappealedto Alexandria and to Rome
of the T6/iOi, or Chapters, which included the against Jerome and his friends as schismatics.
book wepl 'Apx^v (which may be translated Theophilus of Alexandria at once took John's
either On First Principles or On the Poivers side, but, becoming an anti-Origenist later,
on which the chief controversy afterwards opened communication with Jerome, of which
turned). "In his work," he says (pref. to trans, the latter gladly availed himself. J erome was
of Origen on Jer. vol. v. col. 611), " he gave thenceforward the minister of Theophilus in his
all the sails of his genius to the free breath communication with the West in the war against
of the winds, and receding from the shore, Origen; and thus completely united himself with
went forth into the open sea." It was not the anti-Origenistic party. Rufinus, when he
the peculiarities of Origen's dogmatic system, arrived in Rome with Melania in 397, found
but the boldness of his genius, that appealed to the contest about Origenism at its height, but
the mind of J erome. From the first he shewed ignorance on the subject was so great that
a certain independence, nor did he ever give pope Anastasius, even though induced to
his adherence to Origen's peculiar system. condemn Origen, plainly admitted in his
He quoted without blame even such theories letter to John of Jerusalem (Hieron. ii. 677,
as the possible restoration of Satan, but never Vallarsi's Rufinus [Migne's Patr. xxi.] 408)
gave his personal assent to them. Even when, that he neither knew who Origen was nor what
afterwards, he became a violent opponent of he had written. Rufinus being asked by a
Origenism, he shewed discrimination. He pious man named Macarius to give an exposi-
continued to use Origen's commentaries, and tion of Origen's tenets, made the translation
even in some points of doctrine commended his of the irepl 'Apx^v which is now published in
exposition. His vehement language, how- Origen's works and is the only extant version.
ever, makes him appear first a violent partisan This translation was at once the subject of
of Origen, and later an equally violent op- dispute. Jerome's friends complained that
ponent. The change, moreover, has the Rufinus had given a falsely favourable version.
appearance of being the result, not so much Rufinus declared that he had only used the
of a great conviction, as of a fear of the sus- just freedom of a critic and translator in
picion of heresy. omitting passages interpolated by heretics,
John, bp. Jerusalem, and Rufinus.
of — who wished to make Origen speak their views,
During the first year of Jerome's stay at and in translating Eastern thoughts into
Bethlehem he was on good terms with both Western idioms. But the real complaint
John the bp. and Rufinus, who had been against Rufinus rested on personal grounds. In
established with Melania on Mount Olives his preface he had seemed to associate Jerome,
since 377. John, who succeeded Cyril a few as the translator of Origen, with Origen's
months before Jerome and Paula arrived in work, and to shield himself under Jerome's
386, was on familiar terms with Rufinus whom authority. Jerome and his friends, extremely
he ordained, and there is no sign that he was sensitive of the least reproach of heresy and
ill-disposed towards Jerome. The troubles having already taken a strong part against
originated in the visit to Jerusalem of a certain Origen, trembled for his reputation. Rufin-
Aterbius, otherwise unknown (cont. Ruf. iii. was sent to him by Pammachius
us's preface
33), who scattered accusations of Origenistic and Oceanus, with the request (Ep. Ixxxii.)
heresy among the foremost persons at Jeru- that he would point out the truth, and would
salem, and joining Jerome with Rufinus on translate the irepi 'Apx<2*' ^'^ Origen had
account of their friendship, charged them both written it. Jerome did so, and with his new
with heresy. Jerome made a confession of translation sent a long letter (Ixxxiv.) to his
his faith which satisfied this self-appointed two friends, which, though making too little of
inquisitor but Rufinus refused to see him,
; his former admiration for Origen, in the main
and with threats bade him begone. This was states the case fairly and without asperity
HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS 467
towards Rufinus. The same may be said of Ep. ex. 6) with the utmost sorrow at the
his letter (Ixxxi.) to Rufinus himself, possibly scandal ; he declares that he was cast down
in answer to one from Rufinus (" diu te Romae by the thought that " persons so dear and so
moratum sermo proprius indicavit"), which familiar, united by a chain of friendship which
speaks of their reconciliation and remonstrates, had been known to all the church," should
as a friend with a friend, against the mention now be publicly tearing each other to pieces.
Rufinus had made of him. " There are not He writes like one who has an equal esteem for
many," he says, " who can be pleased with both the combatants, and only desires their
feigned praise" ("fictis laudibus"). This reconciliation. But Jerome never ceased to
letter, unfortunately, did not reach Rufinus. speak of his former friend with passionate
He had gone to Aquileia with the ordinary condemnation and contempt. When Rufinus
commendation ("literae formatae") from the died in Sicily in 410 he wrote " The scorpion
:

pope. Siricius had died ; his successor, lies underground between Enceladus and
Anastasius, was in the hands of Pammachius Porphyrion, and the hydra of many heads has
and Marcella (cxxvii.), who were moving him at last ceased to hiss against me " (pref. to
to condemn Origen. Anastasius, though Comm. on Ezk.). In later years he sees the
ignorant on the whole subject, was struck by spirit of Rufinus revived in Pelagius (pref. to
passages shewn him by Eusebius in Jerome's Comm. on Jer. bk. i.), and even in letters of
translation of the Trepi 'Apx^i', which had been edification he cannot refrain from bitter re-
given him by Marcella (Rufin. Apol. ii.), and marks on his memory (Ep. cxxv. 18, cxxxiii. 3).
proceeded to condemn Origen. He also was —
Vigilantins. A fourth controversy was with
persuaded to summon Rufinus (Rufinus Vigilantius (cont. Vig. liber unus), a Spanish
[Migne's Patr. Lat. xxi.] 403) to Rome to make monk, into whom, as Jerome says, the soul of
a confession of his faith
; and wrote to J ohn of his former opponent Jovinian had passed, a
Jerusalem, expressing his fear as to Rufinus's controversy further embittered by mutual
intentions and his faith (see the letter in accusations of Origenism, and in which
Jerome's Works, ii. 677, Rufinus, 408). Jer- Jerome's violence and contemptuousness
ome's friends kept his letter to Rufinus, so passes all bounds. Vigilantius had stayed at
that Rufinus was prevented from learning the monastery at Bethlehem in 396, on the
Jerome's actual dispositions towards him. introduction of Paulinus. In a letter to
He only knew that the latter's friends were in Vigilantius in 396, Jerome accuses him of
some way involving him in the condemnation blasphemous interpretations of Scripture
they had prociured against Origen and which derived from Origen. He treats him as a
the emperors themselves had now ratified vulgar fool, without the least claim to know-
(.Anastasius to John, «.s.). To Anastasius, ledge or letters. He applies to him the
therefore, he replied in a short letter, ex- proverb "Ocoj Xvpa, turns his name to Dormi-
cusing himself from coming to Rome, but tantius, and ends by saying he hopes he may
giving an explicit declaration of his faith. find pardon when, as Origen holds, the devil
But from Jerome he was wholly alienated. will find it. Vigilantius is said by Gennadius
His friend Apronianus at Rome having sent {de Scr. Eccl. 35) to have been an ignorant
him the letter of Jerome to Pammachius and man, though polished in words. But he was
Oceanus, he replied in the document which is as far in advance of Jerome in his views of the
called his Apology, with bitter feelings against Christian life as he was behind him in literary
his former friend. He did not scruple to use power. His book, v/ritten in 404, was sent
against him the facts known to him through by Riparius to Jerome, who replied [Ep. cix.),
their former intimacy, such as the vows made dismissing the matter with contempt. After-
in consequence of his anti-Ciceronian dream, wards, probably finding the opinions of Vigilan-
which he declared Jerome to have broken, and tius gaining ground, he, at the request of certain
he allowed himself to join in the carping spirit presbyters, wrote his treatise against him. It
in which Jerome's enemies spoke against his is a short book, dictated, he states, unius
translation of the Scriptures. This document noctis lucubration e; his friend Sisinnius, who
was privately circulated among Rufinus's was to take it, being greatly hurried. Vigilan-
friends at Rome. It became partly known tius maintained that the honour paid to the
to Pammachius and Marcella, who, not being martyrs' tombs was excessive, that watching
able to obtain a copy, sent him a description in their basilicas was to be deprecated, that the
of its contents, with such quotations as they alleged miracles done there were false ; that the
could procure. Jerome at once composed the money collected for the " poor saints at Jeru-
two first books of his Apology in the form of a salem" had better be kept at home; that the
letter to his Roman friends. Its tone is that hermit life was cowardice ; and. lastly, that it
of one not quite willing to break through an would be well that presbyters shouldbe married
old friendship, but its language is strong and before ordination. Jerome speaks of these ac-
at times contemptuous. It was brought to cusations as being so openly blasphemous as
Rufinus at Aquileia, who answered in a letter to require neither argument nor the production
meant for Jerome's eyes alone, which has not of testimonies against them, but merely the
come down to us. From Jerome's reply we expression of the writer's indignation. He does
know that it was sharp and bitter, and not admit even a grain of truth in them. " If
declared his ability to produce facts which if you do not honour the tombs of the martj'rs,"
known to the world would blast Jerome's he says, " you assert that they were not wrong
character for ever. Jerome was estranged in burning the martyrs." He himself believes
by extracts from Rufinus's Apology. Then the miracles, and values the intercession of the
Rufinus himself sent him a true copy, and the saints. This is the treatise in which Jerome
result was a final rupture. Augustine, to felt most sure he was in the right, and the only
whom Jerome sent his book, writes (Hieron. one in which he was wholly in the wrong.
468 HIEHONYMUS HIERONYMUS
Augustine. —The exchange of letters be- criticism. He insinuates that Augustine
tween Jerome and Augustine, though begun might be seeking honour by attacking him,
with something of asperity, ended in edifica- but warns him that he too can strike hard.
tion. Jerome heard of Augustine soon after Augustine replied in a letter (among Jerome's,
his conversion (386) ;and Augustine, eight civ.) written with demonstrations of profound
years his junior, had a great respect (which respect, but in which, after explaining how
did not prevent criticism) for Jerome and his his first letter had miscarried, he again enters
work. Augustine's friend Alypius stayed with into questions ofBiblical literature. He
Jerome in 393, and Jerome heard with satis- commends Jerome's new translations of N.T.,
faction of the great African's zeal for the study but begs him not to translate O.T. from the
of Scripture and of his rising fame. In 394 Heb., enforcing his wish by the story of a
Augustine, then coadjutor bp. of Hippo parish in Africa being scandalized and almost
(succeeding in 395), having had his attention broken up by its bishop reading Jonah in
no doubt called to Jerome's works by Alypius, Jerome's new version. In this version as then
wrote the letter (among Jerome's, Ivi.) which read, ivy was substituted for gourd in c. iv.
originated the controversy. It related to the When the bishop read " ivy " the people
interpretation of the dispute of St. Paul and rose and cried out " gourd," till he was
St. Peter at Antioch, recorded in Gal. ii. The obliged to resort to the received version, lest
letter is written in a grave tone, but perhaps he should be left without any followers.
with something of assumption, considering the Augustine recommends Jerome to translate
great position of Jerome. Augustine com- from the LXX, with notes where his version
mends him for translating Greek commen- deviates from the received text. Jerome
taries into Latin, and wishes that in his trans- answers that he has never received Augustirte's
lations of O.T. he would note very carefully original letter, but has only seen what pur-
the places in which he diverges from the LXX. ports to be a copy. " Send me," he says,
He then notes that Jerome, in his Commentary " your letter signed by yourself, or else cease
on the Galatians, had maintained that the from attacking me. As to your writings, which
dispute was merely feigned, that Peter had you put forward so much, I have only read
pretended to act so as to incur Paul's rebuke, the Soliloquies and the Commentary on the
in order to set before the church the incon- Psalms, and will only say that in this last there
gruity of a Christian continuing under Mosaic are things disagreeing with the best Greek
law. This appeared to Augustine to impute commentaries. Let me beg you in future, if
to the apostles an acted lie. This letter was you write to me, to take care that I am the
committed, together with other works of first whom your letter reaches." Augustine
Augustine on which Jerome's opinion was now
(in 404) sent by a presbyter Praesidius
desired, to Profuturus, a presbyter, who being, authentic copies of his two original letters
before he sailed, elected to a bishopric in N. (written nine or ten years before), accompanied
Africa, turned back, and soon after died. He by one in which he begged that the matter
had neither transmitted the letter to Jerome might be treated as between friends, and not
nor returned it to Augustine but it was seen
;
grow into a feud like that of Jerome and
by others and copied, so that the attack on Rufinus, which he deeply lamented. Onreceipt
Jerome was widely known in the West while of this Jerome at once wrote (Ep. civ.) a full
entirely unknown to Jerome at Bethlehem. answer to Augustine's principal letters (in
Augustine, discovering that his letter had not Hieron. Ivi. Ixvii. civ. ex.), and on the question
reached Jerome, wrote a second (among of St. Peter at Antioch appealed to the great
Jerome's, Ixvii.), again entering into the Eastern expositors of Scripture. Augustine
question, asking Jerome to confess his error replied in a long letter (in Jerome's, cxvi.) on
and to sing a palinode for the injury done to the chief question, adding many expressions
Christian truth. Paulus, to whom this letter tending to satisfy Jerome as to their personal
was committed, proved untrustworthy, and let relations. Jerome appears to have been more
it be circulated without being transmitted to than satisfied perhaps even to have been
;

Jerome. It was seen by a deacon, Sisinnius, convinced. The only allusions in his later
who, coming to Bethlehem some five years writings to this controversy seem to favour
afterwards, either brought a copy or described Augustine's view. Augustine wrote two
its contents to Jerome. Meanwhile Augustine letters to him a few years later on the origin
heard, through pilgrims returning from Pales- of souls (cxxxi.), and on the meaning of the
tine, the state of the facts and the feelings words, " He that offends in one point is guilty
aroused by them. He wrote a short letter to of all" (cxxxii.). Jerome's reply (cxxxiv.)
excuse himself (among Jerome's, ci.), point- is wholly friendly. He refers to a request
ing out that what he had written was not, as in one of Augustine's former letters (civ.)
seemed to be supposed, a book for publication, for translations from the LXX, saying that
but a personal letter expressing to a friend a these had been stolen from him, and adds,
difference of opinion. He begged Jerome to " Each of us has his gift there is nothing in
;

point out similarly any points of his writings your letters but what I admire and I wish
;

he might think wrong, and concluded with an to be understood as assenting to all you say,
earnest wish for some personal converse with for we must be united in order to withstand
the great teacher of Bethlehem. Jerome Pelagianism." Augustine, on his part, shewed
replied in a letter (cii.) in which friendship a remarkable deference to Jerome's opinion
struggled with suspicion and resentment. He on the origin of souls, as to which after five
sent some of his works, including those last year she still hesitated (Hieron. Ep. cxliv.) to
written, against Rufinus. As to Augustine's give a definite answer to his friend Optatus
works, he says he knows little of them, but because he had not received one from Jerome ;

intimates that he might have much to say in and he sent Orosius, probably referring to this
HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS 469
very question, to sit, as Orosius himself says, (Constantinople, 380), was so weak that he
at the feet of Jerome {de Lib. Arb. 3). The could hardly decipher Heb. letters at night (ib.).
remaining letters shew a constant increase of Controversy arose again with Pelagius (pref.
friendship. The two great teachers, though to Com7n. on Jer. bks. i.-iv.), and Jerome's re-
from somewhat different points of view, lations with the bp. of Jerusalem can hardly
laboured together in combating Pelagianism ;
have been smooth (Ep. cxxxvii.). On the other
and, having been to each other for a while hand, his brother Paulinian was still with him ;

almost as heretics, stand justly side by side the younger Paula, daughter of Toxotius and
as canonized doctors of Latin Christianity. Laeta (evil, cxxxiv.), survived him and re-
Last Period, 405-420. Old Age and Troubles. placed her aunt Eustochium in managing the
— This last period of Jerome's life was full of monasteries. Albina, and the younger Melania
external dangers and towards its close agitated with her husband Pinianus (cxliv.j, came to
by controversy. In 405 the Isaurians devas- live with him he had kindly relations with
;

tated the N. of Palestine, the monasteries of persons in many countries ; and the only
Bethlehem were beset with fugitives, and leading man of the Western church was his
Jerome and his friends were brought into friend. Amidst all discouragements, he con-
great straits for the means of living. The tinued his Biblical studies and writings with
winter was extremely cold, and Jerome was no sign of weakness to the end.
laid low by a severe illness in Lent 406 {Ep. —
Pelagianism. The Pelagian controversy
cxiv.) which left him weak for a long time- The was forced upon his notice. He had not ante-
barbarian invasions culminated in the sack of cedently formed any strong opinion on it, and
Rome by Alaric in 410. In this last calamity, had been connected in early life with some of
which seemed to be ushering in the end of the the leading supporters of Pelagius (pref. to
world (cxxiii.), Pammachius and Marcella Comm. on Jer. bk. iv.). But no great question
died. Emigration from Italy to Africa and could now arise in the church without an appeal
Syria set in, and the more religious among the to Jerome, and his correspondence necessarily
fugitives flocked to Jerusalem and Bethlehem embraced this subject (f^/J. cxxxiii.cxxxviii.).
(pref. to bks. iii. and vii. of Conim. on Ezk.). Orosius, the friend of Augustine, came to re-
J erome was not unaffected by the evil political side at Bethlehem in 414, full of the council
influences of the time. He represents himself of Carthage and of the thoughts and doings
as watched by enemies, who made it danger- of his teacher ; and when in 415 Pelagius and
ous for him even to express his sense of the Coelestius came to Palestine, Jerome was in
miseries of the empire. In his Commentary on the very centre of the controversy. A
the Monarchies in Daniel he reflects on the synod was held under John of Jerusalem
low state to which the Roman empire had [Joannes (216)] in July 415 with no result ;

fallen and its need of support from barbarians ;


and at a synod at Diospolis in 416 Pelagius
and these words were taken as reflecting on was acquitted, partly, it was believed, because
Stilicho, the great half- Vandal general, the the Eastern bishops could not see their way
father-in-law and minister of Honorius, and in matters of Western theology and in judging
the real ruler of the empire. Stilicho, whom of Latin expressions. But the mind of the
Jerome afterwards speaks of (Ep. cxxiii. 17) church generally was against him, and Jerome
as " the half-barbarian traitor who armed the was called upon to give expression to it.
enemy against us with our own resources," Ctesiphon from Rome wrote to him directly on
appears to have heard of Jerome's expressions the subject and drew a long reply (cxxxiii.).
in his commentary and to have taken great Augustine addressed to him two letters on
offence, and Jerome believed that he was points bearing upon the subject (cxxxi.
meditating some revenge against him when cxxxii.), and in his letter on the origin of
he was put to death (" Dei judicio," pref. to souls insinuated that Jerome's creationism
bk. xi. of Comm. on Is.) by order of his imperial
might identify him with Pelagius's denial of
relative. In the year following the sack ofthe transmission of Adam's sin (cxxx. 6).
Rome Palestine suffered from an incursion of Pelagius sometimes quoted Jerome as agree-
barbarians from which Jerome barely escaped ing with him (pref. to Comm. on Jer. bk. i.),
(Ep. cxxvi. 2). He was very poor (pref. to sometimes attacked passages in his commen-
Comm. on Ezk. bk. viii.), but made no com- taries (id. bk. iv.) and depreciated his transla-
plaint of this. His best friends had passed tion of the Scriptures (pref. to Dial, against

away Paula in 403, Pammachius and Mar- Pelag.). Orosius, who withstood Pelagius in
cella in 410 (pref. to Comm. on Ezk. bk. i.). the synod of Jerusalem with little success,
Of his Roman friends, Oceanus, Principia, and appealed (de Libera Arbitrio contra Pelagium)
the younger Fabiola alone remained {Epp. to Jerome as a champion of the faith. Jerome
cxx. cxxvii.) ; Eustochium had very possibly wrote, therefore, in 3 books, the dialogue
(as Thierry supposes) less authority than her against the Pelagians, an amplification of his
mother in the management of the convent, letter to Ctesiphon, in which Atticus (the
and this left room for irregularities like thoseAugustinian) and Critobulus (the Pelagian)
maintain the argument. It turns upon the
related in Jerome'sletter (cxlvii.) to Sabinianus.
Eustochium died in 418 (pref. to Comm. on Jer. question whether a man can be without sin
bk. i.). Jerome's days were taken up by the if he so wills. Its tone is much milder than
monastery and the hospice (pref. to Comm. on that of Jerome's other controversial writings,
Ezk. bk. viii.) and he could only dictate his com-
with the single exception of the dialogue
mentaries at night ; he was even glad when against the Luciferians. But still he is deal-
winter came and gave him longer nights for this ing with a heretic, and heresy is under the ban
purpose [ib.). He was growing weak with age of the church and of heaven. This terrible
and frequent illnesses, and his eyesight, which doom contrasts somewhat sharply with the
had originally failed nearly 40 years before balanced argument, in which Jerome appears
— —

470 HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS


not as a thorough- going predestinarian, but
a " synergist," maintaining the coexistence
Commentaries on Greater Prophets. Of —
Bible work in his later years we have only the
of the free will, and reducing predestination Commentaries on the Greater Prophets on :

to God's foreknowledge of human determina- Daniel in 407 on Isaiah in 16 books, written


;

tion (see the Dialogue, esp. i. 5, ii. 6, iii. 18). in the intervals of business and illness, and
Nevertheless, the partisans of Pelagius were issued at various times from 408-410 on ;

irritated to bitterness and violence. A crowd Ezekiel, from 410-414 and on Jeremiah, ;

of Pelagian monks attacked, partly threw cut short at c. xxxii. by Jerome's last illness.
down, and partly burned the monasteries The prefaces to these are remarkable docu-
of Bethlehem, some of the inmates were ments and very serviceable for the chronology
slaughtered, and Jerome only escaped by of Jerome's life. Those on Ezekiel record the
taking refuge in a tower stronger than the sack of Rome, the death of Rufinus (bk. i.),
rest. This violence, however, was their last the immigration from Rome (bks. iii. and vii.),
effort. A strong letter from pope Innocentius the rise of Pelagianism (bk. vi.) and bk. ix. ;

(cxxxvii,) to John of Jerusalem (who died soon of the commentary speaks of the invasion of
after, 418) warned him that he would be held Rome by count Heraclian. Jerome was
accountable for any future violence, and J erome prevented from taking up the commentary
received a letter (cxxxvi.) assuring him of the on Jeremiah till after the death of Eustochium
pope's protection. J erome's letters to Riparius (418), and thus his last work was written in
Apronius (cxxxix.), and Augustine
(cxxxviii.), the year (419) which intervened between
speak of the cause of Augustine
(cxli. cxliii.), Eustochium's death and his own. Yet not
as triumphant, and of Pelagius, who is com- only is the work
vigour, but the pre-full of ^
pared to Catiline, leaving Palestine, though faces shew a renewal of controversial ardour
Jerusalem is still held by some powerful against Pelagius, whom he speaks of as
adversary, who is compared to Nebuchad- " Scotorum pultibus praegravatus " (bks. i.
nezzar (cxliv.). There was, however, in and iii.). That controversy and the business
the East no strong feehng against Pelagius. of the pilgrims (bk. iv.) shortened his time for
His cause was upheld by Theodore of Mop- the commentary (bk. iii.), which, though in-
suestia, who in a work, of which parts are tended to be short (bk. i.), required his excuses
extant (in Hieron. vol. ii. pp. 807-814), argues inthelast preface (bk. vi.) for its growing length.
against Augustine and Jerome (whom he
calls " Aram "), as " those who say that men
Death. —
It is generally believed that a long
sickness preceded the death of Jerome, that
sin by nature and not by will." In the West after 419 he was unable to work at all, that
a work was written by Anianus, a deacon of he was attended in this illness by the
Celeda, of which a copy was sent to Jerome younger Paula and Melania that he died, ;

(cxliii. 2) by Eusebius of Cremona, but to according to the Chronicle of Prosper of


which he was never able to reply. Aquitania, on Sept. 20, 420, and that he was
Letters. —
The letters of this period of buried beside Paula and Eustochium near the
Jerome's life are mostly ones of counsel to grotto of the Nativity. His body was be-
those who asked his advice. Among these lieved to have been subsequently carried to
maybe mentioned that to Ageruchia (cxxiii.), Rome and placed in the church of Sta. Maria
exhorting her to persevere in her estate as Maggiore on the Esquiline. Legends, such
a widow, and giving as deterrents from a as that, immortalized by the etching of
second marriage some touches of Roman Albert Diirer, of the lion which constantly
manners and a remarkable account of the attended him, and of the miracles at his grave,
sack of Rome to the virgin Demetrias (cxxx.),
; are innumerable.
who had escaped from the burning of Rome Writings now Extant. Vallarsi's ed. con- —
and fallen into the hands of count Heraclian in tains a complete table of contents which may
Africa ; and to Sabinianus (cxlvii.) the lapsed be usefully consulted. In our list the date
deacon, who had brought disorder into the of time and place at which each was composed,
monasteries, and from which letter a whole and the volume in Vallarsi's ed., are added.
romance of monastic life might be constructed. I. Bible Translations :

Jerome wrote also the Memoir of Marcella


(cxxvii.), who died from ill-treatment in the
(i) From the Hebrew. —The Vulgate of O.T.,
written at Bethlehem, begun 391, finished
sack of Rome, addressing his letter to her 404, vol. ix.
friend Principia but he was too dejected
;
(2) From LXX. —The Psalms as
the used
and infirm to write the Epitaphium of at Rome, written in Rome 383 and as ; used
Eustochium, who died two years before him in Gaul, written at Bethlehem c. 388. The
(cdxyiii.). Other letters relate to scriptural book of Job, being part of the translation of
studies ;cxix., to Minucius and Alexander, LXX made between 386 and 392 at Bethle-
learned presbyters of the diocese of Toulouse, hem, the rest being lost [Ep. cxxxiv.), vol. x.
on the interpretation of the words, " We shall
not all sleep, but we shall all be changed "
(3) From the Chaldee. Tobit and Judith, —
Bethlehem, a.d. 398.
cxx., to Hebidia, a lady of a remarkable family
whose father and grandfather were orators,
;

(4) From the Greek. The —


Vulgate version of
N.T., made at Rome between 382 and 385.
poets, professors, and priests of Apollo Belen II. Commentaries :

at Bayeux cxl., to the presbyter Cyprian, an


;

exposition of Ps. xc. cxxiv., to Avitus, on the


(i) Original. —
Ecclesiastes, vol. iii. a.d. 388 ;

; Isaiah, vol. iv. 410 Jeremiah, i. -xxxii. 41,


;

irepi 'Apxi^" cxxix., on how Palestine could


',
vol. iv. 419 Ezekiel, vol. v. 410-414 Daniel,
; ;

be called the Promised Land; and cxlvi., to vol. v. 407 Minor Prophets, vol. vi. at
;

Evangelus an African presbyter, containing the various times between 391 and 406 Matthew, ;

well-known theory of Jerome on the relative vol. vii. 387 Galatians, Ephesians, Titus,
;

positions of bishops, priests, and deacons. Philemon, vol. vii. 388 : all at Bethlehem.
— — ; ;

HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS 471


(2) Translated from Origen. Homilies on — true sense. These principles are not always
J er. and Ezk., vol. v. Bethlehem, date doubtful consistently carried out. There is sometimes
on Luke, vol. vii. Bethlehem, 389 ; Canticles, undue laxity, which is defended in the de
vol. iii. Rome and Bethlehem, 385-387. Optimo Genere Interpretandi ; sometimes an
There is also a commentary on Job, and a unnecessary literalism, arising from a notion
specimen of one on the Psalms, vol. vii. ;
that some hidden sense lies behind the words,
and the translation of Origen's Homilies on but really depriving the words of sense. His
Isaiah, all attributed to Jerome, vol. iv. versions were during his lifetime both highly
III. Books illustrating Scripture : prized and greatly condem.ned. His friend
(i) Book of Hebrew Names, or Glossary Sophronius translated a great part of them
of Proper Names in O.T. Bethlehem, 388 ; ;
into Greek and they were read in many East-
vol. iii. I. ern churches in Jerome's lifetime. After his
(2) Book
of Questions on Genesis, Bethle- death they gradually won universal accept-
hem, 388 vol. iii. 301.
; ance in the West, and were finally, with some
(3) A translation of Eusebius's book on the alterations (mostly for the worse), stamped
Sites and Names of Hebrew Places, Bethle- with the authority of the Roman church at
hem, 388 vol. iii. 121.
; the council of Trent. See Vallarsi's preface
(4) Translation of Didymus on the Holy to vol. ix., and Zockler, pt. II. ii. Hieronymus
Spirit, Rome and Bethlehem, 385-387 ; vol. als Bibel Uebersetzer.
ii. 105. (2) As an expositor, Jerome lacks origin-
IV. Books on Church History and Con- ality. His Commentaries are mostly com-
troversy (all in vol. ii.) : pilations from others, whose views he gives
(i) Book of Illustrious Men, or Catalogue at times without any opinion of his own.
of Ecclesiastical Writers, Bethlehem, a.d. 392. This, however, makes them of special value as
(2) Dialogue with a Luciferian, Antioch, the record of the thoughts of distinguished
379- men, such as Origen. His derivations are
(3) Lives of the Hermits Paulus, Desert, : puerile. His interpretation of prophecy is
374 Malchus and Hilarion, Bethlehem, 390.
; the merest literal application of it to events
(4) Translation of the Rule of Pachomius ;
Ln the church. He is often inconsistent, and
Bethlehem, 404. at times seems to veil his own opinion under
(5) Books of ascetic controversy: against that of another. His allusions to the events
Helvidius, Rome, 383 against Jovinian,
; of his own time as illustrations of Scripture
Bethlehem, 393 ; against Vigilantius, Beth- are often of great interest. His great haste
lehem, 406. in writing (pref. to bk. ii. of Comm. on Eph.
(6) Books of personal controversy against : and pref. to bk. iii. of Comm. on Gal.), his
John, bp. of Jerusalem, Bethlehem, 398 or frequent weak health and weak eyes, and his
399 against Rufinus, i. and ii. 402, iii. 404.
; great self-confidence caused him to trust his
(7) Dialogue with a Pelagian, Bethlehem, memory too much.
416. (3) The books on Hebrew Names, Questions
V. General History —
Translation of the
: on Genesis, and the Site and Names of Hebrew
Chronicle of Eusebius, with Jerome's addi- places shew a wide range of interest and are
tions, vol. viii., Constantinople, 382. useful contributions to Biblical knowledge,
VI. Letters —
The series of letters, vol. i.
: especially the last-named, which is often
Ep. i. Aquileia, 371 ii.-iv. Antioch, 374 v.-
; ; appealed to in the present day. But even
xvii. Desert, 374-379 xviii. Constantinople,
; here he was too ready to accept Jewish tales
381 xix.-xlv. Rome, 382-385
; xlvi.-cxlviii. ; rather than to exercise independent judgment.
Bethlehem, 386-418. In theology, properly so called, he is weak.
The works attributed to Jerome but not His first letter to Damasus on the Trinitarian
genuine, which are given in Vallarsi's ed., are : controversies at Antioch shews a clear per-
A Breviary, Commentary, and Preface on the ception of what the church taught, but also
Psalms, vol. vii. some Greek fragments, and
; a shrinking from dogmatic questions and a
a Lexicon of Hebrew Names, the Names of servile submission to episcopal authority.
Places in the Acts, the Ten Names of God, He accepted without question the damnation
the Benedictions of the Patriarchs, the Ten of all the heathen. His dealings with Origen
Temptations in the Desert, a Commentary on shew his weakness ; he surrendered his im-
the Song of Deborah, Hebrew Questions in partial judgment as soon as Origen's works
Kings and Chronicles, an Exposition of Job, were condemned. In the Pelagian con-
vol. iii., three letters in vol. i., and 51 in troversy his slight realization of the importance
vol. xi., and several miscellaneous writings in of the questions contrasts markedly with the
vol. xi., most of which are by Pelagius. deep conviction of the writings of Augustine.
Criticism. —
(i) As a Bible translator, In some matters, which had not been dealt
Jerome deserves the highest place for his with by church authority, he held his own ;

clear conviction of the importance of his task e.g. as to the origin of souls he is decided as
and his perseverance against great obstacles. a creationist. He puts aside purgatory and
This is shewn especially in his prefaces, which scoffs at millenarianism. His views on the
are of great value as shewing his system. He Apocrypha and on the orders of the Christian
took very great pains, but not with all alike. ministry have become classical.
The (4) For church history he had some
Chronicles he went over word by word con-
with his Hebrew teacher Tobit he translated ;
siderable faculty, as is shewn by the dialogue
in a single day. His method was, first, never with a Luciferian. His knowledge was great
to swerve needlessly from the original and his sympathies large, when there was no
second, to avoid solecisms third, at all risks, ;
question of church condemnations. His book
even that of introducing solecisms, to give the de Viris Illxistribus is especially valuable and
472 HIERONYMUS HIERONYMUS
his defence of it against Augustine's criticism violent in controversy kind to the weak and
;

shews him to have the wider culture and poor respectful in dealing with women
; ;

greater knowledge. But the lives of the entirely without avarice extraordinarily;

hermits incorporate legend with history. In diligent, and nobly tenacious of the main
controversy his ordinary method is to take as objects of his life.
absolute truth the decisions of bishops and Influence. —
His influence grew through his
" He lived
even the popular feeling in the church and to life and increased after his death.

use all his powers in enforcing these. His and reigned for a thousand years." His
own life and documents which give its details writings contain the whole spirit of the church
are his best contributions to church history. of the middle ages; its monasticism, its con-
(5) His knowledge of and sympathy with trast of sacred things with profane, its credu-
human history generally was very like that of lity and superstition, its deference to hier-
monks of later times. He had much curiosity archical authority, its dread of heresy, its
and considerable knowledge. His translation passion for pilgrimages. To the society which
of the Chronicle of Eusebius shews his interest was thus in a great measure formed by him, his
in history, but is very uncritical. The mis- Bible was the greatest boon which could have
takes of Eusebius are not corrected but been given. But he founded no school and
aggravated by the translator his own addi- ;
had no inspiring power there was not
;

tions shew that his critical faculty was not sufficient courage or width of view in his
such as to guard against the admission of spiritual legacy. As Thierry says, " There is
considerable errors and his credulity con-
;
no continuation of his work a few more ;

stantly reveals itself. He nowhere shews even letters of Augustine and Paulinus, and night
the rudiments of a philosophy of history. He falls over the West." A cheap popular Life of
knew both the events of his time and facts St. Jerome by E. L. Cutts is pub. by S.P.C.K.
lying beyond the usual range. He was in their Fathers for Eng. Readers. trans, of A
acquainted with the routes to India, and his principal works is in the Lib. of Nic. and
mentions the Brahmans {Epp. xxii. Ixx. etc.) Post.-Nic. Fathers. The Bp. of Albany has in
and Buddha {adv. Jov. i. 42). Events like the preparation (1911) a trans, of the Epistolae
fall of Rome deeply impressed him but he ;
Selectae (ed. Hurter). [w.h.f.]
deals with these very much as the monks of the Hierotheus, a writer whose works are
middle ages dealt with the events of their time. quoted by the Pseudo-Dionysius, who styles
He is a recluse, with no political sagacity and him his teacher. Two long extracts are
no sense of human progress. preserved in the de Divinis Norninibus of
(6) His letters are the most interesting part the Pseudo-Dionysius (c. 2, §§ 9, 10 c. 4, ;

of his writings. They are very various vivid ; §§ 15-17), and there are incidental references
in feeling and graphic in their pictures of to him elsewhere. In the first extract (c. 2,
life. The letters to Heliodorus (xiv.) on the § 9 fin.) his Theological Institutes (deoXoyiKai
praise of hermit life ; to Eustochium (xxii.) on (TToixei-i^ireii) are cited ; in the second his
the preservation of virginity in the mixed life Amatory Hymns {ipLoriKol v/xvoi). His writ-
of the Roman church and world to Asella most probably belong to the school of
; ings
(xlv.) on his departure from Rome to Nepo- Edessa, and should be dated about
; the middle
tian (lii.) on the duties of the presbyters and or end of 5th cent. In confirmation of this
monks of his day to Marcella from Paula and
; view Dr. Westcott has noted a statement in
Eustochium (xivi.), giving the enthusiastic Assemani (Biblioth. Orient, ii. 290, 291) that
description of monastic life among the holy Stephen Bar-Sudaili, abbat of a monastery at
places of Palestine to Laeta (cvii.) on the Edessa, published a book under the name of
;

education of a child whose grandfather was a Hierotheus to support his own mystic doc-
heathen priest, whose parents were Christians, trines. Assemani says that this abbat held
and who was herself to be a nun to Rusticus the doctrine of final restoration as taught by
;

(cxxv.), giving rules which shew the character Origen, and was abused for it by Xenaias and
of the monastic life in those days, —
all these are James of Sarug, bp. of Batnae {Bibl. Or. i.
literary gems and the Epitaphia of Blesilla 303, ii. 30-33
;
Ceillier, x. 641 Westcott on ; ;

(xxxix.), Fabiola (Ixxvii.), Nepotianus (Ix.), Dionys. Areop. in Contemporary Rev. May,
Paula (cviii.), and Marcella (cxxvii.) form a 1867). The mystical views in the works of
hagiography of the best and most attractive Hierotheus and Dionysius easily lend them-
kind. selves to the support of that theory. Accord-
Style. — His style is excellent, and he was ing to Assemani (ii. 291), Bar-Sudaili wrote
rightlypraised as the Christian Cicero by under the name of Hierotheus to prove
Erasmus, who contrasts his writings with " finem poenarum aliquando futurum, nee
monkish and scholastic literature. It is impios in saeculum saeculorum puniendos fore,
vivid, with happy turns,
full of illustrations, sed per ignem purgandos atque ita et malos
;

such as " lucus a non lucendo," 'Ovip \vpa, daemones misericordiam consequuturos esse,
" fac de necessitate virtutem," " Ingemuit et cuncta in divinam naturam transmutanda,
totus orbis et Arianum se esse miratus est." juxta illud Pauli, ut sit Deus omnia in omni-
The scriptural quotations and allusions are bus." In Mai's Spicilegium Romanum (iii.
often overdone and forced, but with no un- 704-707) will be found other fragments of this
reality or cant and he never loses his dignity
; writer, translated from some Arabic MSS.
except in some controversial personalities. Their theology savours, however, more of the
Character. —He was vain, and unable to 4th and 5th cents, than of the ist. But see
bear rivals ;extremely sensitive as to the A. L. ¥Tothmg,\\aLm, Stephen Bar-Sudaili and the
estimation of his contemporaries, especially Book of Hierotheos (Levden. 1886). [g.t.s.]
the bishops passionate and resentful, but
; Hilarianus (1), Quintus Julius (Hilarion),
at times suddenly placable scornful and ; a Latin Chiliast writer, c. 397, author of two
HILARION HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS 473

extant treatises. The first, Expositum de Die His daily sustenance was 15 carices (a sort of
Paschae et Mensis, after having disappeared figs). He cultivated a little plot of ground
for several centuries, was printed in 1712, with and made baskets of rushes, so as not to be
a dissertation by Pfaffius to prove that it idle. His disordered fancy summoned up a
was written a.d. 397. Hilarian supports the thousand temptations of Satan, but he over-
Latins against the Greeks, in agreement with came them all by calling on the name of
pope Victor and the council of Nicaea. Christ. He dwelt 12 years in a little cabin
The second treatise, Chronologia sive Libellus made by himself of woven reeds and rushes ;

de Mundi Duratione, is founded on a dispute after that in a hut only 5 feet high, still shewn
about the date of the end of the world. The when Jerome was in Palestine, and more like
author counts 5,530 years from the Creation a sepulchre than a house.
to the Passion gives the world 6,000
;
and The fame of his sanctity spread rapidly, and
;

would therefore end it c. 498. he was reputed to be a worker of miracles and


The following is a sketch of his chronology an exorcist. Men of all ranks (whose names:

From the Creation to the Deluge 2237 years.


and abodes are circumstantially recorded)
. .

Deluge to the Call of Abraham 1012 ,, suffering from hysteric affections, then attri-
,, ,,

,, thence to the Exodus 430 ,, buted to demons, were healed. An officer of


,, ,, ,, Samuel Majoma, whose duty it was to rear horses
450 ,,

,, ,, ,, Zedekiah for the Circensian games and who had been


514 ,,
The Captivity lasted 7o
always beaten through a spell laid upon his
,,
Thence to the Passion 887
,,
chariot by the votaries of Marnas, the idol of
He believes that after the close of the Gaza, won the race when the saint had poured
apocalyptic thousand years will come the water upon his chariot wheels. Hilarion had
loosing of Satan, the seducing of the nations many disciples, whom
he formed into societies
Gog and Magog, the descent of fire from and went on circuits to visit them and many
;

heaven upon their armies then the second ;


storieswere told of his shrewdness and pene-
resurrection, the judgment, the passing away tration in rebuking their weaknesses.
of the old things and the bringing in of the But the crowds who flocked about him made
new heavens and new earth " impii in ;
him feel no longer a hermit and in his 63rd
;

ambustione aeterna justi autem cum Deo in


;
year, the year of the death of Anthony (which
vita aeterna " (c. 19). His style is barbarous. was miraculously made known to him), he
La Eigne, Biblioth. Vet. Pair. 1609, t. vii. ;
resolved to set out on his wanderings. Men
1618, t. V. pt. i. ; 1654, t. vii. ; 1677, t. vii. crowded round him to the number of 10,000,
Migne, Pair. Lat. xiii. col. 1094-1114 Cave, i. ;
beseeching him not to depart. Business
252 Ceillier, vi. 288. A new ed. of de Mundi
;
ceased throughout Palestine, the minds of men
Duratione was pub. by C. Frisk in Chronica being wholly occupied with hopes and fears
Minora (Leipz. 1892). [w.m.s. and j.g.] about his departure but he left them, and
;

Hilarlon (1), a hermit of Palestine (d. 371). with a few monks, who seem soon to have left
Jerome wrote his Life in 390, quoting Epi- him, he went his way, never to return. He
phanius, Hilarion's disciple. Jerome certainly first turned towards Babylon, then to Egypt.
considered his Lives of the Hermits as historical He iied to the Oasis, and afterwards sailed for
(Vit. Malchi, i.) but the marvels of the Life
;
Sicily. There he lay hid for a time but his ;

of Hilarion have induced some to believe it disciple Hesychius at last discovered him.
to be a mere romance (Israel in Hilgenfeld's He again set forth in search of solitude but ;

Zeitschrift for 1880, p. 128, but see Zockler's wherever he went his miracles betrayed him.
Jerome, 179). No attempt is made in this He at length arrived m
Cyprus, the home of his
art. to separate fact from fiction. The Life of friend Epiphanius. There he found a solitary
Hilarion in any case shews the ideal on which and inaccessible place, still called by his name,
monasticism was nourished in the 4th cent. where he lived the last three years of his life,
Hilarion was born at Thabatha, 5 miles often in the company of Hesychius and
S. of Gaza, c. 300, of heathen parents, who sent Epiphanius. His body was buried in the
him for education to Alexandria. There he grounds of a lady named Constantia, but
shewed great talents and proficiency in rhet- Hesychius disinterred it, and carried it to
oric, which then comprehended nearly the Majoma in Palestine. Constantia died of
whole of a liberal education. He was of a grief, but the translation caused joy through-
disposition which made him beloved by all. out Palestine, where its anniversary was
He became a Christian, and, turning from the observed as a festival. Vita S. Hilarionis, in
frivolous pleasures of the circus and theatre, Jerome's Works, vol. ii. 13-40, ed. Vail. Soz. ;

spent all his leisure in the assemblies of the iii. 14, vi. 32 ;Vit. Patrum, lib. v. c. 4, § 15, p.
church. Hearing of the monastic retreat of 568, in Migne's Patr. Gk. vol. Ixxiii. His name
Anthony, he became his disciple for a time, occurs in the Byzantine Calendar, Oct. 21, as
but found that the multitude who resorted to " Our Father Hilarion the Great." [w.h.f.]
Anthony made life with him a city life rather Hilarius (7) Piotaviensis, St. (Hilary of
than one of retirement. Though but fifteen Poictiers), d. a.d. 368.
years old, he determined to become a hermit. Authorities. —(i) His own writings. These
He returned to Palestine and found his parents furnish so much information that the bio-
dead, gave away his goods to his brothers and graphy in the Benedictine ed. of Hilary's works
the poor, and went to live in a desert place 7 is mainly drawn from them. (2) Hieron. de
miles from the Christian city of Majoma near Viris Ulustribus (sen Scriptorum Eccles. Cata-
Gaza. The boy hermit was clad in a sackcloth logus), c. 100. Also in Esaiam, c. Ix., in Psalm.
shirt, which he never changed till it was worn Iviii. (A.V. lix.), in the prooemium in lib. ii.

out, a cloak of skins which Anthony had given Comm. ad Gal. (3) St. Augustine, de Trinitate,
him, and a blanket such as peasants wore. lib. X. c. 6, lib. xv. c. 2. (4) Cassian, de Incur-
474 HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS
natione, lib. vii. {5) St. somewhat more than three years Hilary had a
Gregory of Tours, de
Glorid Confessorum, c. 2. (6) Fortunatus, whose good deal of liberty and much enforced leisure.
identification is uncertain. [Fortunatus (17) He employed it in examining the condition of
and (18).] (7) Cassiodorus, Institut. Divin. religion in Asia Minor, forming an exceedingly
lib. i. c. 16. unfavourable impression, especially as re-
Life. —
Hilary is believed to have been born garded his episcopate, and in composition and
of illustrious stock in Poictiers. St. Jerome an attempt to remove misunderstandings,
(in Gal.) distinctly asserts this, but some especially between the bishops of the East and
authorities name more vaguely the province those of Gaul for the Galileans imagined all
;

of Aquitaine, rather than the capital. He in Asia to be sheer Arians, while the Orientals
enjoyed a good education in the Latin classics, supposed their brethren in Gaul to be lapsing
and evidently was specially fond of the into Sabellianism. Hilary's treatise de Syn-
writings of Quintilian. odis belongs to this period (358 or 359), and
About A.D. 350, Hilary, then a married man also his great work de Trinitate-
but, it would seem, still young, appears to have The fourth year (359) of Hilary's exile
become a Christian. He depicts himself as witnessed the council of Rimini in the West
gradually rising first above the attractions of and that of Seleucia in the East. The em-
ease and plenty then aiming at knowledge
; peror apparently intended the decisions of
of truth and the practice of virtue. The these two assemblies, if accordant, to be
books of Moses and the Psalms gave him conjointly regarded as the decree of one
abundant help in his desire to know God in ; oecumenical council. Hilary was compelled
his consciousness of weakness the writings of by the secular authorities to attend that of
apostles and evangelists aided him, more espe- Seleucia, Constantius himself having convoked-
cially the Gospel of St. John, with its clear and it. He found there three sections : the
emphatic teaching on the incarnation of the orthodox, semi-Arian, and ultra-Arian or
co-eternal Son. His conversion was essentially Anomoean. Although his presence was of
due to the study of Holy Scripture. great service in explaining the true state of
After his baptism he became an edifying things in Gaul, the language of the Acacians
example of a good Christian layman. He so shocked him that he retired from the
must have remained a layman for some few assembly. These Anomoeans were neverthe-
years. His wife's name is unknown, but a less condemned there.
daughter, his only child, was called Abra {al. From Seleucia Hilary went to Constanti-
Apra seu Afra). About 353 the see of nople and was granted an interview with the
Poictiers became vacant by death. The emperor. Here the Arians, having joined the
popular voice fixed upon Hilary as the new Anomoeans, were in great force, and, having
bishop, and he was raised per saltum to the gathered another council in the Eastern
episcopate. He amply justified the choice. capital, tried to reverse their failure at
Two years after his consecration a visit from Seleucia. A challenge from Hilary to discuss
St. Martin, which was regarded as a compli- the questions at issue publicly, in presence of
ment to the orthodoxy and zeal of Hilary, the emperor, on the evidence of Holy Scrip-
proved a prelude to an active struggle against ture, was, as he informs us, declined and
;

the Arian party in Gaul, then headed by Constantius sent his prisoner back to Gaul,
Ursacius, Valens, and Saturninus, of whom without formally annulling the sentence of
Saturninus occupies, in the writings of the banishment or allowing him perfect liberty.
orthodox, an evil pre-eminence, being repre- The energies of Hilary in Gaul were chiefly
sented as immoral, violent, and apt to seek the concerned with the Arians, but his acts
aid of the civil power against the defenders (though by no means all his writings) in
of the creed of Nicaea. Hilary unites with Phrygia with the semi-Arians. His attitude
Sulpicius Severus in censuring Saturninus towards these two forms of error was by no
more than his comrades. The course pursued means identical. Arianism he regarded as a
by Ursacius and Valens, though less violent, deadly heresy, with which anything like com-
was extremely fitful and uncertain, and a promise was impossible. But with semi-
majority of the bishops of Gaul, led by Hilary, Arianism, or at any rate with certain leading
formally separated themselves from the com- semi-Arians, he thought it quite possible to
munion of all three. Many even of those who come to an understanding and it will be seen
;

had leant towards Arianism now threw in their in the account of his works how earnestly he
lot with Hilary, who received them on condi- strove to act as a peacemaker between them
tion that they should be approved by the and the supporters of the creed of Nicaea.
confessors then suffering exile. At a The three succeeding years (a.d. 360-362) were
council at Beziers, in Languedoc, Saturninus partly occupied by his rather dilatory journey
probably presiding, Hilary (with some other homeward, and after his return by efforts
orthodox bishops) was present, but declares which, though of a conciliatory character, all
that he was refused a hearing. The emperor aimed at the restoration of the faith as set
Constantius received from Saturninus an forth at Nicaea. His joy at reaching Poictiers
account of this gathering, and at once resolved (where he was warmly welcomed) and at
to banish to Phrygia Hilary and one of his finding in health his wife, his daughter, and
allies, St. Rhodanus, bp. of Toulouse. Hilary his disciple St. Martin, was dashed by the
believed that the accusation laid against him scenes witnessed during his progress. Con-
before the emperor involved a charge of gross stantius had banished all bishops who had
impropriety of conduct. As this event refused to accept the formula promulgated at
occurred soon after the council of Beziers and Rimini (Socr. H. E. ii. 37 confirmed by Soz. ;

before that of Seleucia, its date is assigned to iv. 19, and by St. Jerome in his treatise adv.
the middle of 356. During this exile of Luciferianos). Hilary and his more ardent
HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS 475
friends were not prepared at once to refuse that of Origen, in Greek, or, if in Latin, only
communion to all who had been betrayed into partial, as some tractates of St. Cyprian. In
accepting the Riminian decrees. He gathered the next century the work of Hilary was some-
in different parts of Gaul assemblies of bishops what overshadowed by the commentaries
for mutual explanation, apparently with great produced by the genius of St. Augustine and
success. Hilary's former opponent, Saturninus, the learning of St. Jerome in the West, and by
bp. of Aries, vainly attempted to thwart this the eloquence of St. Chrysostom in the East.
work, and Saturninus soon found himself de- Although he may have made some use of the
serted and practically, perhaps even formally, writings of Origen, there is much that is
excommunicated by the Gallican episcopate. curious and sometimes acute as well as devout
Hilary now ventured, despite the unre- that seems to be really his own. Jerome and
pealed sentence of banishment, to journey Augustine frequently quote it. It was prob-
into N. Italy and Illyria, to bring these pro- ably composed before his banishment to
vinces into spiritual conformity with Gaul. Phrygia in 356.
He arrived in Italy a.d. 362 and was greatly On the expressions concerning divorce (Matt,
encouraged and assisted by St. Eusebius of v. 31, 32), Hilary regards Christian marriage
Vercelli. These two friends, especially in as absolutely indissoluble. His endeavours
remote districts, into which a fair statement to solve difficulties, such as that of the gene-
of the points at issue had not penetrated, alogies of our Lord, indicate a real willingness
created a considerable impression, though not to face them and are not devoid of acuteness.
equal to that produced in Gaul. Possibly On " the brethren of the Lord " Hilary uses
Lucifer of Cagliari proved an obstacle. That the powerful argument that Christ would not
this ardent and ultra-Athanasian supporter of have committed the Virgin Mother to the care
orthodoxy disapproved of one of the con- of St. John if she had had children of her
ciliatory manifestos of Hilary will be seen own, and he adopts the view, usually con-
below ; and as on another ground he had nected with the name of Epiphanius, that they
broken with Eusebius and was opposed to all were children of Joseph by a former wife.
communion with any who had accepted the Hilary's respect for the LXX led him to
decrees of Rimini, he could not have viewed embrace the Alexandrian rather than the
their career with satisfaction. Palestinian canon of O.T. He occasionally
Hilary, nevertheless, remained in Italy until cites some portions of the Apocrypha (as
the late autumn of 364. Valentinian, who Judith, Wisdom, and Maccabees) as Scripture.
became emperor in Feb. 364, found him at He is earnest in urging the study of Scripture,
Milan in November. A serious altercation and lays much stress on the need of humility
between Hilary and Auxentius, bp. of Milan, and reverence for reading them with profit.
attracted his attention. The generally charit- Both the Word and the Sacraments become
able tone adopted by Hilary towards his spiritual food for the soul.
ecclesiastical opponents warrants our accept- II. Dogmatical. —
LibriXII.de Trinitate. —
ing his unfavourable report of Auxentius. For de Trinitate some copies read contra
According to Hilary, the profession of the Arianos, others de Fide, and others some
creed of Nicaea made by Auxentius was slight varieties of a like kind. But de Trini-
thoroughly insincere, though he persuaded tate appears on the whole the most suitable ;

Valentinian that he was acting in good faith ;


and as Hilary's is the most ancient extant
and, as a natural result, Hilary was com- exposition of St. Matthew by a Latin father,
manded to return to Gaul and at once obeyed, so the de Trinitate is the first great contri-
but to the bishops and the church at large made bution, in Latin, to the discussion of this great
known his own convictions respecting the real dogma. Bk. i. treats of natural religion,
character of the bp. of Milan. and how it leads up to revelation. Bk. ii.
Hilary spent more than three years at especially discusses the baptismal formula
Poictiers after his return from Italy. These (Matt, xxviii. 19) bk. iii. the union of the
;

years, especially the last two, were compara- two natures in Christ bk. iv. that this co-
;

tively untroubled. He died calmly on Jan. existence of two natures does not derogate
13. 368, though in the Roman service-books from the unity of His Divine Person. Bk. v.
his day is Jan. 14, so as not to interfere with urges, as against heretics, the testimony of
the octave of the Epiphany. the prophets {ex auctoritatibus propheticis) in
Writings. —
I. Exegetical. —
(i) Exposition favour of the propositions of bk. iv. Bk. vi.
of the Psalms (Commentarii in Psalmos). — The is mainly occupied with refutations of
comments embrace Ps. i., ii. ix.-xiii. (and per- Sabellian and Manichean doctrines. Bk. vii.
;

haps xiv.) li.-lxix. xci.-cl. (The numbers are shews how the errors of Ebionites, Arians, and
; ;

the Vulgate reckoning, e.g. li. is lii., and Ixix. Sabellians overthrow each other, thus illus-
is Ixx. in A.V.) The treatment is not critical, trating a principle asserted in bk. i. § 26 :

but reveals a deeply sincere and high-toned " Lis eorum est fides nostra." Bk. viii.
spirit. Jerome's translation was yet to come contains a demonstration of the unity of God,
when Hilary wrote. As was natural, he leant and shews that it is nowise affected by the
mainly and somewhat too confidently upon Sonship of Christ. Bk. ix. replies to the Arian
the LXX, but took full advantage of the appeal to certain texts, e.g. Mark xiv. 32, Luke
comments of Origen. He seeks a via media xviii. 19, John v. ig, xiv. 28, xvii. 3. Bks.
between the literal sense, and that reference of x. and xi. similarly discuss, e.g., Matt. xxvi. 38,
everything to Christ which marks some later 39, 46, Luke xxiii. 46, John xx. 17, and i Cor.
commentators, both patristic and medieval. XV. 27, 28. Bk. xii. is also expressly written
(2) Commentarii in Matthaeum. —This is the against Arianism. It includes a passage of much
earliest gospel commentary in the Western beauty, which bears a slight resemblance to
church ;all previous ones being either, like the devout and eloquent pleading of Wisd. ix.
476 HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS
The work is a longer, more methodical, and Ps. liii.condemns not only Apollinaris, but
8
more consecutive anti-Arian argument than (by anticipation) Nestorius and Eutyches as
Athanasius himself found time to indite. well. Nevertheless, such mistakes as Hilary
Viewed intellectually, it must perhaps be did make are all connected with the subject,
ranked above Hilary's commentary on Scrip- which has been summed up in so masterly a
ture. Its recognition of the rights of reason manner by Hooker (£. P. bk. v. cc. lii.-liv.,
as well as of faith, combined with its sense of esp. § 10 of liv.), viz. the union of the two
human ignorance and of our need of humility, natures in the one divine personality of Christ.
its explanation of many difficulties and of the The chief of these mistakes are as follows In
:

meaning of the terms employed the endea-


; de Trinitate, bk. x., Hilary seems to approach
vour (though not always successful) to adapt to a denial of the truth that the Incarnate Lord
to his subject the imperfect medium of Latin, took man's nature from His Virgin Mother,
its many felicitous descriptions, both of the of her substance. This is probably only
temper in which we ought, and the spirit in an incautious over-statement of the article,
which we ought not, to approach the study of " He was conceived of the Holy Ghost." For
these mysteries the mode of his appeals to the language in other passages of this book and
;


Holy Scripture, all form very striking on Pss. cxxxviii. and Ixv. implies a complete
features. The book evidently produced a acceptance of the Homo ex substantia Matris.
great impression. A high compliment is paid Some laxity of usage appears in regard to the
it by the historian Socrates :
" Both [i.e. terms Verbum and Spiritus. Certainly the
Hilary and Eusebius of Vercelli] nobly con- former word seems necessary instead of
tended side by side for the faith. Hilary, who the latter in the phrase (bk. x.) " Spiritus
was an eloquent man, set forth in his book the sanctus desuper veniens naturae se huniana>»
dogmas of the Homoousion in the Latin tongue carne immiscuit." Dora Coutant points out
. .and powerfully confuted the Arian dog- similar confusion of language in TertuUian and
.

mas " (H. E. iii. lo). It marks an epoch in Lactantius, and even in St. Irenaeus and St.
the history of dogmatic theology in the Western Cyprian. St. Gregory and St. Athanasius
church. Its influence declined in the next seem inclined to palliate it.
century and throughout the earlier and later A more serious error is Hilary's apparent
middle ages. About 416, some 56 years after want of grasp of the truth of our Lord's
its publication, the 15 books de Trinitate humanity in all things, sin alone excepted.
of the great bp. of Hippo appeared. St. At times he seems to speak of our Lord's
Augustine became the doctor par excellence natural body as if endued with iinpassibility
of the West, and the labours of Hilary, most (indolentia) and of His soul as if not obnoxious
,

effective at their appearance, became some- to the human affections of fear, grief, and the
what neglected and obscured. The errors of like. This and the other mistakes of Hilary
Pelagianism, perhaps some anticipations of are more or less palliated by Lanfranc, by the
Nestorianism, had certainly by the time of two great schoolmen Peter Lombard and
Augustine tended to bring into clearer relief Aquinas, and by Bonaventure. Hilary also
some particular phases and elements of meets with indulgence from Natalis Alexander;
Christian doctrine. Development in this and, above all, is defended by his Benedictine
sense is fully recognized by the Lutheran editor, Dom Coutant, who, as Cave justly re-
Dorner and by the Anglican Prof. Hussey. marks, "naevosexplicare, emollire et vindicare
Nor can it be called a novel theory. " By the satagit." A sort of tradition was handed down
very events," writes the historian Evagrius, to Bonaventure by a schoolman, William of
" by which the members of the church have Paris, that Hilary had made a formal retrac-
been rent asunder have the true and faultless tation of his error concerning the indolentia,
dogmas (to, 6pda koI ajjuhfJiVTa ddy/uLara) been which he had ascribed to our Lord. This
the more fully polished and set forth, and the seems very doubtful nevertheless, the lan-
;

Catholic and apostolic church of God hath guage of "his later books, e.g. on the Pss.,
gone on to increase and to a heavenward appears to recognize the reality of both the
ascent" (H. E. i. 11). "Many things," mental and bodily sufferings of Christ.
says Augustine himself, " pertaining to the III. Polemical. (i) — Ad Constantium

Catholic faith, while in course of agitation Augustum Liber Primus- This address, prob-
by the hot restlessness of heretics, are, with ably Hilary's earliest extant composition, is
a view to defence against them, weighed a petition to the emperor evidently written—
more carefully, understood more clearly, and before Hilary's exile, at the close of 355 or
preached more earnestly ; and the question early in 356— for toleration for the orthodox
mooted by the adversary hath become an in Gaul against the persecution of Arian bishops
occasion of our learning." * The intentions and laymen. These assaults Hilary represents
of Hilary were so thoroughly good that both as both coarse and cruel. He names some sup-
his studies of Holy Scripture and the influence porters of Arianism, both in the East and in
of the three later oecumenical councils would Gaul. Among the latter, Ursacius and Valens
doubtless have saved him from some serious occupy a painful prominence. He urges that
mistakes, if he had lived to hear of their it is even on poUtical grounds a mistake for the
decisions. It is true, as the Benedictine emperor to allow such proceedings among his ;

editor points out, that Hilary's note upon Catholic subjects will be found the best de-
fenders of the realm against internal sedition
* Dean Hook, in his University Sermons preached
and barbarian invasion. The excellent tone
before 1838, called attention to this
as a favourite
of this address is admitted on all sides.
opinion of St. Augustine's. Bp. Mobcrly, in his
Discourses on the Great Forty Days (preface and dis- (2) Ad
Constantium Augustum Liber Secun-
course iv.) shewed the difference between this view dus. —Thissecond address is subsequent to
and the modern Roman theory of development. Hilary's exile, having been presented to the
HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS 477

emperor in 360. Hilary protests his innocence tains, substantially sound. It asserted the
of all charges brought against him. He is external origin of the Son from the substance
still in effect a bishop in Gaul, ministering to of the Father, and condemned the heresy of
his flock through the clergy. He would gladly Photinus, " quae initium Dei filii ex partu
meet the man whom he regards as the author Virginis mentiebatur." Hilary appeals to the
of his exile, Saturninus, bp. of Aries. He is more peace-loving among the semi-Arian
anxious to plead for the faith in the council bishops to accept both terms in their true
about to be summoned. He will argue from sense. " Date veniam, Fratres, quam fre-
Holy Scripture, but warns the emperor that quenter poposci. A riant nan estis ; cur negando
every heretic maintains his creed to be agree- homoousion censemini Ariani?" (§88). Here
able to Scripture. He is deeply conscious of comes in that remarkable statement, that he
the injury wrought to Christianity in the sight had never, before his exile, heard the Nicene
of the outer world by the distractions of so Creed, but had made it out for himself from
many rival councils and professions of faith. the Gospels and other books of N.T.
(3) Contra Constantium Augustum Liber.
— A peacemaker is often suspected on one side,
This book is addressed to the bps. of Gaul. sometimes upon both. His first letter to
Jerome is almost certainly mistaken in assert- Constantius, his commentary on St. Matthew,
ing its composition to be later than the death his confessorship as shewn in his exile, did not
of Constantius. Internal evidence sufficiently save Hilary from suspicion. By some he was
confutes the idea, though its existence prob- held to have conceded too much to the semi-
ably did not become widely known until after Anans. This opinion was voiced by Lucifer
that event (361). Hilary's tone is now utterly of Cagliari, the earnest out somewhat harsh-
^ changed. He has given up all hope of minded representative of that extreme wing
influencing Constantius. The emperor, too, on which might be called more Athanasian than
his side, has altered the traditional line of Athanasius. Some apologetic notes, shewing
policy against opponents. He is here charged, much courtesy and gentleness, appended by
not with persecution, but with the enticements Hilary to a copy sent to Lucifer, were first
of bribes, of good dinners, of flatteries and in- published in the Benedictine ed. (Paris, 1693).
vitations to court. Hilary appears to have (5) Liber contra Auxentium. — Written a.d.
laid aside his usual self-restraint, perhaps to 365, under Valentinian, who had become
have lost his temper, and to have forgotten his emperor in 366. Hilary was convinced that
usual respectfulness and charity of language. the profession of orthodoxy made by Auxen-
Constantius has become, in his eyes, an Anti- tius was thoroughly insincere. The emperor
christ, who would fain make a present of the accepted the position avowed by Auxentius,
world to Satan. The entire letter shews that entered into communion with him, and
Hilary had lost all hope of any aid to the faith ordered Hilary to leave Milan. Hilary obeyed
being granted by Constantius, and it is at least at once, but, as the sole resource left him,
just to give its due weight to the remark of published this address to the church at large.
Mohler that, " if we drive men to despair, we Hence its other titles, viz. contra Arianos vel
ought to be prepared to hear them speak the Auxentium Mediolanensem, and Epistola ad
language of despair." Catholicos et Auxentium. It forms a curious
(4) De Synodts Fidei Catholicae contra commentary upon church history by bringing
Arianos et praevaricatores Arianis acquies- into vivid relief the utterly changed character
centes ;also occasionally referred to as de Fide of the temptations to which Christians were
Orientalium ; and sometimes, though less now exposed as compared with those of the
frequently, as de Synodts Graeciae, or even ante-Nicene period. Hilary's view must be
simply as Epistola. Internal evidence fur- considered a rather one-sided one. He sees
nishes a satisfactory approximation to the clearly the evils of his own day, but hardly
date of its composition, viz. in 358 or very realizes what must have been the trials of the
early in 359. It is a letter from Hilary, an times of Nero, Decius, and Galerius. The
exile in Phrygia, to his brother-bishops in Gaul, concluding part makes out a strong case
who had asked for an explanation of the against Auxentius. It is difficult to believe
numerous professions of faith which the that he was not an Arian at heart. Hilary,
Orientals seemed to be putting forth. Hilary, like some of his contemporaries, declares that
although (as we have seen from his subsequent the ears of the people have become purer than
second letter to Constantius) deeply conscious the hearts of the bishops. He begs those who
of the harm wrought by these proceedings, shrink from breaking off communion with
wrote back a thorough Irenicon, for such Auxentius, whom he calls an angel of Satan,
must the de Synodis among all his writings not to let their love of mere walls and build-
be especially considered. Praising his Gallic ings seduce them into a false peace. Anti-
brethren for firmness in opposing Saturninus christ may seat himself within a church ;
the
and for their just condemnation of the second forests and mountains, lakes and prisons, are
formula proposed at Sirmium, he desires that safer. It must be remembered, in palliation
they and their brethren in Britain (provinci- of Hilary's strong language respecting the bp.
arum Britanniarum episcopi) should come to of Milan, that he regarded him not as an open
Ancyra or to Rimini in a conciliatory frame of foe, but as a betrayer of truth by false pre-
mind. Just as the orthodox Homoousion may tences. Rufinus, who speaks of Hilary as a
be twisted into Sabellianism, even so may " confessor fidei Catholicae," entitles this work
the unorthodox Homoiousion be found patient " librum instructionis plenissimae." '*

of a good interpretation. It may be shewn (6) —


Fragmenta Hilarii. These fragments
to those well disposed that, rightly understood, were first published in 1598 by Nicolaus Faber,
complete similarity in reality involves identity. who got them from the library of Father
The faith professed at Sardica was, he main- * Rufinus, de Adulteratione Librorum Origenis.
478 HILARIUS PICTAVIENSIS HILARIDS ARELATENSIS
Pithou. They possess considerable value in to find Ceillier's editor, in his anxiety to dam-
the elucidation of the history of the period age the authority of the fragmenta, somewhat
embraced by Hilary's episcopate. It is injuring the credit of the only one brief
claimed that they are the remnants of a book sentence in the extensive works of Hilary
by Hilary mentioned by Rufinus, and de- which can be cited as a recognition, however
scribed by Jerome as Liber contra Valentem et indirect, of the Roman primacy (Ceillier, iv.
Ursacium, which contained a history of the p. 63, note). In practice Hilary did not
councils of Rimini and Seleucia. On this book often take his stand upon authority. The
Hilary expended much labour, having begun metropolitan see of Aries was in his time
it in 360 and completed it in 366. The 15 occupied by the Arian Saturninus, Hilary's
fragments occupy some 80 folio pages. They chief opponent in his earlier day. He had not
are, with one exception, recognized as genuine been long bishop when, by force of character,
by Tillemont and by Ceillier. Whether, will, intellect, and confessorship, he came into
however, all the other documents cited in these the first rank of champions. The idea of con-
fragments can be depended upon has been troversy being settled by the fiat of any one
disputed. Respecting the genuineness of the bishop, whether of Rome or elsewhere, had
commentaries given by Dom Pitra, opinions never dawned upon his mind. No leave was
may fairly differ and happily there is in that asked when he descended into Italy toconfront
;

case no disturbing influence at work as there Auxentius. A cheap popular Life of Hilary of
is in the case of these fragments. If we accept Poictiers,by J. G.Cazenove, ispub. byS.P.C.K.
them as authentic, the case against Liberius in their Fathers for Eng. Readers, and a selection
is certainly darkened. But this is precisely of his works is in the Lib. of Nic. and Post-
the conclusion which certain modern critics Nic. Fathers. Cf. also an art. in Journ. of"-
(such as, e.g., the anonymous editor of Dom Theol. Stud. Apr. 1904, by A. J. Mason on "The
Ceillier) are for very obvious reasons most First Latin Christian Poet." [j.G.c]
anxious to avoid. Hilarius (17) Arelatensls (Hilary of Aries),
(7) Epistola ad Abram Filiam suam [c. St., bp. of Aries and metropolitan.
358). — Hilary, during his exile, learnt that Authorities. — (i) References to himself in
there was some prospect of his daughter Abra, his biography of his predecessor, Honoratus of
though only in her 13th year, being sought in Aries. (2) Vita Hilarii, usually assigned to
marriage. He draws a mystic portrait of the St. Honoratus, bp. of Marseilles, a disciple of
heavenly bridegroom, which is evidently Hilary (Boll. Acta SS. 5; Mai. ii. 25). (3)
intended to suggest the superiority of a Gennadius, Illiist. Vir. Catal. § 67. (4) St.
religious celibacy, but leaves her an entirely Leo (Ep. 89, al. 10). (5) Councils of Riez, 439,
free choice, only desiring that the decision Orange and Vaison, 442, Rome, 445 (Labbe,
should be really her own. He encloses a Concil.t. i. pp. 1747, 1783), Vienne, 445 (Nata-
morning and an evening hymn. On any lis Alexander, Hist. Ecclesiastica, t. v. p. i68,
difficulties in the letter or the hymns, Abra is art. viii. de Concilio Romano in causa Hilarii
to consult her mother. The Hymnus matuii- Arelatensis). (6) Notices of St. Hilary are
nns, a very brief one, is still extant. The also to be found in the writings of St. Euche-
Hymnus vespertinus is more disputed, but Rius (who dedicated to him liisbook de Laude
Cardinal Mai makes a fair case for it, though Eremi), of St. Isidore, of Sidonius Apollinaris,
it does not satisfy Dom Coutant and Dom and others ; and very specially in certain
Ceillier. Two other hymns by Hilary, com- writings of St. Prosper and St. Augustine, to
mencing respectively " Hymnum dicat turba which references will be found below.
fratrum " (a hymn on the life of our Lord) and The place of his birth, probably in 401,
" Jesus refulsit omnium " (on the Epiphany) was apparently that part of Gallia Belgica
are given by Thomassy in his Hymnarium. called later Austrasia. He was of noble
Dom Pitra gives some verses of considerable family. His education was, according to the
beauty on our Lord's childhood, which seem standard of the age, a thoroughly liberal
to be Hilary's. The letter to Abra is con- one, including philosophy and rhetoric. That
sidered doubtful by some critics, and rejected in rhetoric he became no mean proficient is
by Cave, but upon insufficient evidence. proved by the graceful style of the one assured
The best ed. of Hilary is the Benedictine by composition of his which is extant.
Coutant (Paris, 1693), or its reprint with a few The early ambition of Hilary's mind lay
additions by Maffei (Verona, 1730). The de in the direction of secular greatness. Both
Trinitate is in Hurler's Ss. Pat. Opusc. (Inns- station and culture gave him every prospect
briick, 1888). of success, and he appears to have ably dis-
In conclusion, it must be observed that, charged the duties of some dignified offices in
though Hilary in his de Trinitate (lib. vi. 36- the state, though we are not informed of their
38) speaks of Peter's confession as the founda- precise nature. He must have been very
tion of the church, he, in other writings, more young when the example and the entreaties
especially in his commentary on the Psalms, of his friend and kinsman Honoratus of Aries
is inclined to make Peter himself, whom he induced him to renounce all secular society for
terms caelestis regni janitorem, the foundation. the solitude of the isle of Lerins. He sold his
In the fragmenta we find a letter from the estates to his brother, and gave the proceeds
fathers of Sardica to pope Julius, which partly to the poor, partly to some monasteries
certainly does refer to the Roman see as which needed aid. At Lerins he became a
the head see. If Hilary approved of this model monk in the very best and highest sense;
document, he may very probably have allowed but after a period probably not exceeding
to Rome a primacy, at any rate, in the West. two years his friend Honoratus, being chosen
But this is a somewhat slender foundation to (a.d. 426) bp. of Aries, obtained the comfort
build a superstructure upon ; and it is singular of Hilary's companionship in his new duties.
HILARIUS ARELATENSIS HILARIUS ARELATENSIS 479
Honoratus died Jan. 429,andHilaryatonce
i6, was well championed. Leo and Hilary were
prepared to return to Lerins, but the citizens men of saintly piety, earnest and energetic in
of Aries compelled him to occupy the vacant the discharge of their duties. Each con-
see. As bishop, he lived in many respects scientiously believed himself in the right ;

like a monk, though by no means as a recluse. both were apt to be hasty and high-handed
Simply clad, he traversed on foot the whole in carrying out their views of ecclesiastical
of his diocese and province. At home he government. Hilary found at Besangon
dwelt in a seminary with some of his clergy. (Vesontio), or according to some at Vesoul,
For the redemption of captives he earned a bp. named Chelidonius, the validity of
money by tilling the earth and planting vines, whose position was assailed on the two
and did not scruple to sell on emergencies grounds that he had married a widow while
sacred church vessels, substituting others of yet a layman, and that he had previously,
meaner material. He continued his studies, as a lay magistrate, pronounced sentences of
was constant in meditation and prayer, and capital punishment. Hilary held a council
as a preacher produced a great impression, at Vienne in 444, and we learn from his bio-
by his excellent matter and delivery. grapher and from the testimony of Leo that by
The canons passed by the councils of Riez its sentence Chelidonius was deposed from the
and of Orange, over which Hilary presided in episcopate and appealed to Rome in person.
439 and 442 respectively, were in the main of Although it was now midwinter, Hilary went
a disciplinary character ;at Riez a special on foot across the Alps. Presenting himself
canon, the seventh, insisted strongly on the to Leo, he respectfully requested him to act
rights of the metropolitan. It seems un- in conformity with the canons and usages of
deniable that Hilary was inclined to press the the universal church. Persons juridically
claims of this office to a degree which amounted deposed were known to be serving the altar
to usurpation ;
partly, perhaps, in regard to in Rome. If Leo found this to be the case,
the geographical extent of the jurisdiction let him, as quietly and secretly as he pleased,
claimed by him for the see of Aries, and cer- put a stop to such violation of the canons. If
tainly with respect to the rights of the clergy, Leo would not do this, Hilary would simply
the laity, and the comprovincial bishops. return home, as he had not come to Rome to
But before dealing with his important bring any accusation. It seems probable,
contest with pope Leo, we must interpose a however, that he would have listened if Leo
few words on the semi-Pelagianism of which had been content with suggesting a rehearing
he has been accused. In 429, the year in of the cause in Gaul. Leo declined to take
which he became bishop, two letters (225 and this view. Although Gaul was not a portion
226 in the Benedictine ed. of St. Augustine) of the Roman patriarchate, the Roman pontiff
were addressed to the great bp. of Hippo, one resolved to assert over that region a claim
by Prosper, and one by another Hilary, a similar to that which he had just failed to
layman. In the former. Prosper, after establish in Africa. [Leo.] He summoned a
recounting various shades of dissent mani- council or conference in which Hilary, for the
fested in S. Gaul from the Augustinian teach- sake of peace, consented to take part. Several
ing on predestination, expressly names Hilary, bishops were present, including Chelidonius.
bp. of Aries, among the recalcitrants. Pros- Hilary, with much plainness of speech, de-
per refers in terms of high encomium to Hilary, fended his conduct. Leo had him put under
and intimates that in all other respects the guard ; but Hilary contrived to escape and
bp. of Aries was an admirer and supporter of (apparently in Feb. 445) returned to Aries.
Augustine's teaching. He believed, indeed, Leo found the charge of marriage with a
that Hilary had some intention of writing to widow not proven against Chelidonius ; and
Augustine for explanation on the points at formally (as he had already done informally)
issue. The epistle of Hilary the layman, pronounced him restored to his rank of bishop
though its statement is more brief and general, and to his see. Not content with the re-
entirely confirms that of Prosper. versal of Hilary's sentence, Leo proceeded to
If on this evidence, and also from the re- deprive the bp. of Aries of his rights as a
spect shewn by him to Faustus of Riez, we are metropolitan, and to confer them on the bp.
compelled to class Hilary of Aries with the of Vienne. He further charged Hilary with
semi-Pelagians, it must be recognized that he having traversed Gaul attended by a band of
is a supporter of their views in their very armed men, and with hastily, without waiting
mildest form. That Hilary had some grounds for election by the clergy and laity, consecrating
for fearing that Augustine's teaching might a new bishop in place of Projectus, a bishop
imperil the acknowledgment of man's free (according to Hilary within his province) who
agency is admitted by many of our historians, was at that time ill. Leo availed himself of his
e.g. Canons Bright (Hist, of Church, p. great influence with Valentinian III. to obtain
307)
and Robertson {Hist, of Chr. Church, bk. iii. an imperial rescript against Hilary, as one
cc. ii. and vii.). St. Germain of Auxerre, who who was injuring the peace of the church and
went twice over to Britain to contend against rebelling against the majesty of the empire.
Pelagianism, was a companion of the bp. of This celebrated document, which virtually
Aries on at least one of his tours through Gaul. promised the support of the secular arm to the
Out of this tour, undertaken by Hilary as claim of the Roman pontiff to be a universal
metropolitan, there arose the important con- bishop, was issued in 445, and was addressed
test between the bps. of Aries and Rome to the Roman general in Gaul, Aetius.
which ended in procuring for the Roman see a In this controversy Protestant historians,
great increase of authority, both in respect of as a rule, take the side of Hilary. But Roman
territory and of power. The struggle is in Catholics are much divided. Writers of the
many respects a remarkable one. Each side ultramontane school, as Rohrbacher or the
430 HILARIUS ARELATEKSIS HILARIUS
Italian Gorini (cited in the recent edition of aid lent by the emperors towards establishing
Dom Ceillier), are severe upon Hilary and the greatness and authority of the pope.
profess to regard the emperor's rescript as Of the remaining four years of Hilary's life,
only stating explicitly a principle always after his return to Gaul, we know little more
recognized. But the Galileans, as Quesnel and than that they were incessantly occupied with
Tillemont, strongly defend Hilary. the discharge of his duties. Practically the
It must be said for him that his conviction, acts of Leo do not appear to have affected his
that the see of Aries gave him metropolitical position (see Hallam, Middle Ages, vol. ii.
power over the whole of Gaul, was based upon c. vii. pt. i. and Fleury). and Hilary never
no small amount of cogent testimony. The acknowledged their validity ;though an
case in favour of this has been ably summed appeal to Leo was made after Hilary's death
up by Natalis Alexander {H. E. § v. c. v. for the restoration of its ancient metropolitical
art. 8), and by the Rev. W. Kay in a note to rights to Aries. The attempts of Hilary
the Oxf. trans, of Fleury (Lond. 1844). But through friends to conciliate Leo availed little.
if it hold good for the case of Chelidonius, it But when, after the death of Hilary (May 5,
is not equally clear for that of Projectus. 449), the prelates of the provinces announced
That Hilary should escape from Rome, when to Leo that Ravennius had been elected and
he found the secular authority employed to duly consecrated, Leo wrote an acknowledg-
detain him, was only natural and justifiable. ment which sounds like a virtual retractation
That he should take soldiers with him in of his imputations on the motives and charac-
making his visitations may be reasonably ter of Hilary and most justly entitled him a
ascribed (as Fleury suggests) to the disturbed man " of holy memory."
state of the country. As regards Projectus, —
Writings. Waterland {Critical History of
he may have strayed beyond the ill-defined the Athanasian Creed) argues that Hilary of
limits of his province and most certainly Aries was the author of the (so-called) Creed
violated canonical rule. But there is no of St. Athanasius, but this remains only an
reason to doubt that Hilary, in so acting, ingenious conjecture. Among other doubt-
really believed that Projectus would not ful works assigned to Hilary must be classed
recover, and wished to provide against an certain poems on sacred subjects (i) Poetna
:

emergency. As for Hilary's exceeding freedom de septem fratribus Maccabaeis ab Antiocho


of language in the presence of Leo, which Epiphane inter feclis. (2) A poem, more fre-
greatly shocked Leo and probably others quently attributed to Prosper Aquitanus and
among the audience, it must be remembered generally included in his works, entitled
that the bp. of Aries was always wont to Carmen de Dei Providentid. (3) Carmen in
speak very plainly. Moreover, as a friend of Genesim. This poem (which, like the two
Hilary, the prefect Auxiliaris subsequently preceding, is in hexameters) has been more
observed, " Roman ears were very delicate." often ascribed to the earlier Hilary, bp. of
Those who are willing to accept pleas on Poictiers. The Benedictine editors reject it
behalf of Hilary do not thereby commit them- with some indignation from the genuine works
selves to unreserved censure on pope Leo. of Hilary of Poictiers ; remarking, however,
The encouragement to interference in the that this does not involve its attribution to
affairs of S. Gaul was undeniably very great. Hilary of Aries. But despite faults theo- —
Strong as was the case for the jurisdiction of logical, grammatical, and metrical the poem —
Aries over most of the Galilean sees, the is curious as a real attempt at that blending
authority over Narbonensian Gaul had long of the Christian and classic elements of litera-
been claimed for the bp. of Vienne. A contest ture displayed in after-ages so brilliantly,
between Patroclus of Aries and Proculus of though after all with questionable success, by
Marseilles had already been carried to a such able scholars as the Jesuit Casimir and
former bp. of Rome, Zosimus, in 422 (some 22 the Presbyterian Buchanan.
years before the case of Hilary), though the We have the authority of Hilary's bio-
result had not been encouraging to the par- grapher for asserting that he did compose some
tisans of Rome, since Zosimus misjudged it poetry {versus), wrote many letters, an ex-
and his successor Boniface referred it back to planation of the Creed {Symboli Expositio —
the prelates of Gaul. But Leo, though at this is a main element in Waterland's argu-
times dwelling more upon St. Peter's confes- ment) and sermons for all the church's festivals
sion of faith than on his personal position, in (Homiliae in tot ins Anni Festivitates). These
all his letters bearing on the contest with were apparently extant when Honoratus
Hilary repeats continually the text (Matt, wrote. Two only survive : (i) Epistola ad
xvi. 18) on which other bishops of Rome had Eucherium Episcopum Lugdunensem. (2) Vita
dwelt so much, and appeals to it as if no other Sancti Honorati Arelatensis Episcopi. This
interpretation had ever been heard of, and may be read in the BoUandist Acta Sanctorum,
as in itself his sole and sufficient justification. for Jan. 16. [J-g-c]
Leo's recourse to the emperor's aid has been Hilarius (18^ {Hilams), bp. of Rome from
severely censured ; and Tillemont declared Nov. 19 (or 17, Bolland.), 461, to Sept. 10, 467,
concerning the famous law of June 6, 445, that succeeding Leo I. after a vacancy of nine
" in the eyes of those who have any love for days. He was a native of Sardinia and, when
the church's liberty or any knowledge of her elected pope, archdeacon of Rome. He had
discipline, it will bring as little honour to him been sent, when a deacon, as one of the legates
whom it praises as of injury to him whom it of pope Leo to the council at Ephesus called
condemns" (Tillem. Mem. eccl. t. xv. art. xx. Latrocinium (449), and is especially mentioned
p. 83). Baronius (as Tillemont naturally in the Acts of the council as having protested
adds) is fully justified in appealing to this against the deposition of Flavian. After the
act of Valentinian as a proof of the powerful council, Flavian having died from the violent
HILARIUS HILARIUS 481

tfeatment he had undergone, Hilarius, fearing name, in the former of which he accuses
with reason the like usage, escaped from Mamertus of presumption and prevarication,
Ephesus and travelled by by-roads to Italy. threatens to deprive him of his metropolitan
A letter from Hilarius, addressed after his rank and disallows the bishops whom he had
return to the empress Pulcheria, gives an ordained till confirmed by Leontius. The
account of these transactions (Baron, ad ann. second letter is noteworthy in that the pope
449, and Act. Concil. Chalced.). His short rests his claim to supremacy over Gaul on
pontificate is chiefly memorable for his asser- imperial as well as ecclesiastical law alluding
;

tion of the authority of the see of Rome in probably to the rescript of Valentinian III.
Gaul and Spain. His predecessor Leo, during " He [i.e. Mamertus] could not abrogate any
his struggle with St. Hilary of Aries for portion of the right appointed to our brother
supremacy in Gaul, had obtained from Valen- Leontius by my predecessor of holy memory ;

tinian III. a famous rescript (445) confirming since it has been decreed by the law of Chris-
such supremacy to the fullest extent both in tian princes that whatsoever the prelate of the
Gaul and elsewhere [Leo] and to such extent
;
apostolic see may, on his own judgment, have
it was accordingly claimed by Hilarius. Soon pronounced to churches and their rulers . . .

after his accession he wrote (Jan. 25, 462) to is to be tenaciously observed nor can those
;

Leontius, bp. of Aries and exarch of the things ever be upset which shall be supported
"
provinces of Narbonensian Gaul, announcing by both ecclesiastical and
royal injunction
the event and referring to the deference due (Hil. Epp. ix. X. xi. Labbe). Baronius
to the Roman see. In the same year he wrote finds itneedful to account for St. Leo and St.
a second letter to Leontius, who had deferenti- Hilarius having so bitterly inveighed against
ally congratulated the pope on his accession, and St. Hilary and St. Mamertus by saying that
had begged him to continue the favour shewn popes may be deceived on matters of fact, and,
to the see of Aries against opponents of its under the prepossession of false accusations,
jurisdiction. The pope, in his reply, com- persecute the innocent (Baron, ad ann. 464).
mends his correspondent's deference to St. In 465 Hilary exercised over the Spanish
Peter and desires that the discipline of the church the authority already brought to bear
Roman church should prevail in all churches. on that of Gaul, but this time on appeal. Two
Rusticus, metropolitan of Narbonne, had questions came before him. First, Silvanus,
nominated his archdeacon Hermes as his bp. of Calchorra, had been guilty of offences
successor, but had failed to obtain Leo's against the canons ; and his metropolitan,
approval. On the death of Rusticus, Hermes Ascanius of Tarragona, had in 464 sent a
had been accepted by the clergy and people synodal letter on the subject to the pope,
of Narbonne as their metropolitan bishop. On requesting directions (Inter Hilar. Epp., Ep.
this, Frederic, king of the West Goths, an Arian, ii. Labbe). Secondly, Nundinarius, bp. of
wrote to acquaint the pope with the " wicked Barcelona, had nominated his successor, and
usurpation " and " execrable presumption " of after his death the nomination was confirmed
Hermes. Accordingly Hilarius wrote a third by the metropolitan Ascanius and his suffra-
letter to Leontius, in which he adopts the gans. But they wrote to the pope desiring
language of Frederic, and requires Leontius his concurrence and acknowledging the
to send to Rome a statement of the affair, primacy of St. Peter's see. Both these letters
signed by himself and other bishops (Hil. Ep. were considered in a synod at Rome. On the
vii. Labbe). The matter was now brought second case it was decided that Irenaeus, the
before a synod at Rome (462), and Hermes nominated bishop, should quit the see of Bar-
was declared degraded from the rank of celona and return to his former one, while
metropolitan, but allowed to retain his see. the Spanish bishops were ordered to condone
Hilarius notified this decision in a letter dated the uncanonical acts of Silvanus (Hil. Epp. i.
Dec. 3, 462, to the bishops of the provinces ii. iii. and Concil. Rom. xlviii. Labbe).

of Vienne, Lyons, Narbonensis prima and In 467 the new emperor Anthemius was
secunda, and the Pennine Alps, which letter induced by one Philotheus, a Macedonian
also contained regulations for the discipline heretic whom he had brought with him, to
of the church in Gaul (Hil. Ep. viii. Labbe). issue a general edict of toleration for heretics.
In 463 Hilarius again interposed in the affairs This was, however, revoked before coming
of the church in Gaul ; and on this occasion into effect, and pope Geiasius (Ep. ad Episc.
not only Leontius of Aries but also Mamertus, Dardan.) says that this was due to Hilarius
metropolitan of Vienne, fell under his dis- having in the church of St. Peter remonstrated
pleasure. The city Diae Vocontiorum (Die with the emperor and induced him to promise
in Dauphine) had been assigned by pope Leo on oath that he would allow no schismatical
to the jurisdiction of Aries ; but Mamertus assemblies in Rome. In the same year
had, notwithstanding, ordained a bp. of that Hilarius died. He appears in the Roman
see. Hilarius, again deriving his information Calendar as a saint and confessor. In re-
from an Arian prince, Gundriac the Bur- membrance of his deliverance at Ephesus
gundian king, wrote a severe letter to Leon- from the trials that procured him the title
tius, censuring him for not having apprized of confessor, he built, after he became pope,
the holy see, and charging him to investigate in the baptistery of Constantine near the
the matter in a synod and then send to Rome Lateran, two chapels dedicated to St. John
a synodal letter giving a true account of it. Baptist and St. John the Evangelist, to the
Mamertus seems to have continued to assert latter of whom he attributed his deliverance.
his claim to jurisdiction in spite of the pope ;
The chapel to the Evangelist bore the inscrip-
for in Feb. 464 we find two more letters from tion, " Liberatori suo Johanni Evangelistae,
Hilarius, a general one to the Gallican bishops, Hilarus famulus Christi " (Bolland. citing
and another to various bishops addressed by Caesar Rasponus).
31
482 HiPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS
The extant writings of Hilarius are his chair contain Greek inscriptions. The back
letters referred to above. Anastasius Biblio- has a list of works presumably written by the
thecarius mentions his decreta sent to various person represented. One side has a sixteen-
parts, confirming the synods of Nice, Ephesus, years' cycle, exactly corresponding to the
and Chalcedon. condemning Eutyches, Nes- description of Eusebius and beginning with
torius, and all heretics, and confirming the the first year of Alexander. Other evidence
domination and primacy of the holy Catholic makes it certain that this cycle is that of
and apostolic see (Concil. Rom. u.s. ; Thiel. Hippolytus. The works suiiiciently agree
Epp. Pontiff. Rom. i.). [j.b— v.] with those ascribed to Hippolytus by Eusebius
Hippolytus (2) Romanus. Though so and Jerome and no doubt is entertained that
;

celebrated in his lifetime, Hippolytus has been Hippolytus is the person commemorated.
but obscurely known to the church of sub- The list of Paschal full moons in the cycle
sequent times. He was at the beginning of gives accurately the astronomical full moons
the 3rd cent, unquestionably the most learned for the years 217-223 inclusive. For the next
member of the Roman church, and a man of eight years the true full moons are a day or
very considerable literary activity his works
;
two later than those given, and after that
were very numerous, and their circulation deviate still further ; so that after two or
spread from Italy to the East, some having three revolutions of the cycle the table would
been translated into Syriac, Arabic, Armenian, be useless. This table must, then, have been
Ethiopic, and perhaps other languages. His framed about the time specified, a.d. 222, and
name assumes various disguises, as Poltus in the chair must be a nearly contemporary
the popular memory of Italy, in Egypt as monument, for it is not conceivable that the
Abulides. There is evidence also that he took table would be put on record, to doits author .

a very active part in the affairs of his own honour, after it had been tried long enough
church ; but there are no contemporary wit- to make its worthlessness apparent. Fiurther,
nesses to inform us concerning his personal the inscription is in Greek, and the early
history. A century after his death Eusebius Roman church contained a large section, if
evidently knew nothing of him beyond what not a majority, of foreigners, whose habitual
he could infer from such works of his as had language was Greek. This inscription must
reached him. These works were soon super- have been placed before that section had
seded by those of other more able and learned disappeared and Latin had become the ex-
writers. Scarcely one has come down to us clusive language of the church. A further
without mutilation, and the authenticity of proof of antiquity is furnished by the list of
almost every work assigned to him has been writings, which is independent of those of
disputed. Yet his celebrity survived, and Eusebius and Jerome, and which no one in
various legends, not always carefully distin- the West could have drawn up long after the
guished from the authentic history of the saint, death of Hippolytus. The date thus fixed
arose. It has been disputed whether Hippo- agrees with what we otherwise know, that
lytus was a presbyter or a bishop and if a
; Hippolytus was a contemporary of Origen,
bishop, of what see whether he laboured in
; Jerome telling us that it appeared from a
Italy or Arabia ;whether he was orthodox or homily of Hippolytus then extant that it had
a schismatic ; whether he was a martyr, and been delivered in Origen's hearing. We know
if so, by what death he died. At length the from Eusebius (H. E. vi. 14) that Origen
recovery of the work on heresies, now by visited Rome in the reign of Caracalla and
general consent attributed to him, cleared episcopate of Zephyrinus, i.e. some time in the
away some obscurities in his personal history, years 21 1-2 17. In one of these years he might
though many questions can still receive only thus have heard Hippolytus preach. We
doubtful answers. must place the commencement of the activity
The earliest notice of Hippolytus is by of Hippolytus as early as the 2nd cent.
Eusebius in two passages (H. E. vi. 20, 22). Photius tells us that the treatise of Hippolytus
In the first, speaking of ecclesiastical writers Against all the Heresies professed to be a syn-
of whom letters were then preserved in the opsis of lectures delivered by Irenaeus. The
library at Jerusalem, Eusebius mentions simplest supposition seems to be that Hippo-
" likewise Hippolytus, who was bishop of lytus heard Irenaeus lecture in Rome. Euse-
another church somewhere." In the second bius tells of one visit of Irenaeus to Rome c.
he gives a list of the works of Hippolytus 178. A note in a Moscow MS. of the martyr-
which he had met with (not including any dom of Polycarp (Zahn's Ignatius, p. 167)
letters), this being probably the list of those represents him as teaching at Rome several
in the library at Caesarea, but adds that many years before. It is not unlikely that Irenaeus
other works by him might be found elsewhere. came again to Rome and there delivered
If the earliest witnesses give no certain lectures against heresies. The time could not
information as to where Hippolytus laboured, have been long after the beginning of the last
they enable us to determine when he lived. decade of the 2nd cent. It has been shewn
Eusebius says that he wrote a work on the that the author of the cycle engraved on the
Paschal feast, in which he gives a sixteen- chair must also have been the author of a
years' Easter table, and accompanies it with chronicle, a Latin translation of which is
a chronology, the boundary of his calculations extant, the last event in which is the death
being the first year of the emperor Alexander, of the emperor Alexander (235). In that year
i.e. A.D. 222. In 1 55 1, in some excavations an entry in the Liberian Catalogue of bishops
made on the Via Tirburtina, near Rome, a of Rome records that Pontianus the bishop,
marble statue was found, representing a and Hippolytus the presbyter, were trans-
venerable person sitting in a chair, clad in the ported as exiles to the pestilent island of
Greek pallium. The back and sides of the Sardinia. It is difiicult to believe that the
HlPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS 483
Hippolytus here described as presbyter is not He says that Callistus had aspired to the
our Hippolytus, and probably both he and episcopal throne and that on the death of
Pontianus gained the title of martyrs by Zephyrinus " he supposed himself to have
dying in the mines. From the " depositio obtained what he had been hunting for." But
martyrum " of the Liberian Catalogue it Hippolytus treats him only as the founder of
appears that the bodies of Pontianus and a school (8i8aaKa\t2ov) in opposition to the
Hippolytus were both deposited on the same Catholic church, using the same word with
day (Aug. 13), the former in the cemetery of regard to Noetus [cont. Hacr. Noeti, Lagarde,
Cailistus, the latter in that on the Via Tibur- p. 44), of whom he says that when expelled
tina, and it is natural to think that both from the church he had the presumption to
bodies were brought from Sardinia to Rome. set up " a school." Hippolytus says that
The translation of Pontianus, we are told, was Callistus and his party claimed to be the
effected by pope Fabianus, probably in 236 or Catholic church and gloried in their numbers,
237. A very different account of the martyr- though this multitude of adherents had been
dom of Hippolytus is given by Prudentius gained by unworthy means, namely, by
(Peristeph. 11), who wrote at the beginning of improper laxity in receiving offenders. Cal-
the 3th cent. His story is that Hippolytus listus had received into his communion per-
had been a presbyter, who was torn in pieces sons whom Hippolytus had excommunicated.
at Ostia by wild horses, like the Hippolytus He adds that this school of Callistus still con-
of mythology. Prudentius describes the tinued when he wrote, which was plainly after
subterranean tomb of the saint and states that the death of Callistus, and he refuses to give
he saw on the spot a picture representing this its members any name but Callistians. Evi-
execution, and that this martyrdom was dently the breach between Hippolytus and
commemorated on Aug. 13. He gives an Callistus had proceeded to open schism. But
account of the crowds who flocked to the if Hippolytus did not regard Callistus as bp.
commemoration and a description of a stately of Rome, whom did he so regard ? To this
church, with a double row of pillars, which question it is difficult to give any answer but
Bollinger considers was the church of St. Dollinger's : Hippolytus claimed to be bp. of
Laurence (t 258), a saint whose cultus Rome himself. In the introduction to his
attained much greater celebrity, and who was work, Hippolytus claims to hold the episcopal
also buried on the Via Tiburtina, his church office; he declares that the pains which he
being adjacent to the tomb of Hippolytus. took in the confutation of heresy were his duty
The picture which Prudentius saw may well as successor of the apostles, partaker of the
have been originally intended to depict the grace of the Holy Spirit that had been given
sufferings of the mythological Hippolytus, to them and which they transmitted to those
and, being inscribed with that name, have of right faith, and as clad with the dignity of
been ignorantly copied or transferred by the high priesthood and office of teaching and
Christians to adorn the resting-place of the guardian of the church. Afterwards we find
martyr of that name. The tale told by Pru- him exercising the power of excommunication
dentius is plainly the offspring of the picture, upon persons, who thereupon joined the school
and the authentic evidence of the deposition, of Callistus. Thus we seem to have a key to
on Aug. 13, on the Via Tiburtina of the remains the difficulty that Hippolytus is described in
of a Hippolytus who is coupled with Pontianus the Liberian Catalogue only as presbyter, and
indicates the real owner of the tomb, of whom, yet was known in the East universally as
in the century and a half which passed before bishop, and very widely as bp. of Rome. His
Prudentius visited it, all but his name and the claim to be bishop was not admitted by the
day of his feast had been forgotten. church of Rome, but was made in works of
What light has been cast upon his history his, written in Greek and circulating exten-
by the recovery of the treatise against here- sively in the East, either by himself in the
sies ? The portion previously extant had works or more probably in titles prefixed to
been known under the name of Origen's them by his ardent followers. We have also
Philosophumena . We make no scruple in a key to the origin of the tradition that
treating this as the work of Hippolytus, for Hippolytus had been a Novatianist. He had
this is the nearly unanimous opinion of critics, been in separation from the church, and the
Lipsius alone hesitating and cautiously citing exact cause of difference had been forgotten.
the author as Pseudo-Origenes. From this Against another hypothesis, that Hippolytus
work it appears that he took an active part in was at the same time bp. of Portus and a
the affairs of the Roman church in the epis- leading presbyter of Rome, Dollinger urges,
copates of Zephyrinus and Cailistus. Dol- besides the weakness of the proof that Hippo-
linger has shewn that, without imputing wilful lytus was bp. of Portus, that there is no
misstatement to Hippolytus, it is possible to evidence that Portus had then a bishop, and
put on all that he relates about Callistus a that, according to the then constitution of the
very much more favourable interpretation church, the offices of presbyter and bishop
than he has done ; and with regard to the could not be thus combined. Dollinger con-
charge that Callistus in trying to steer a middle tends that the schism could not have occurred
course between Sabellianism and orthodoxy immediately on the election of Callistus but
;

had invented a new heresy, the retort may be there is exactly the same reason for saying
made that it was Hippolytus himself who iii his that Hippolytus refused to recognize Zephyr-
dread of Sabellianism had laid himself open to inus as bishop, as that he rejected Callistus ;

the charge of Ditheism. But the point to which for he speaks of the former also as " imagin-
Dollinger called attention, with which we are ing " that he governed the church. In con-
most concerned here, is that Hippolytus in this sistency, then, Dollinger ought to have made
work never recognizes Callistus as bp. of Rome. the schism begin in the time of Zephyrinus,
484 HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS
and so de Rossi does, adding a conjecture of dominant party should have completely
his own, that the leader of the schism had been condoned his offence, that he should have been
Victor's archdeacon, and had in that capacity honoured for centuries as a saint and a martyr,
obtained his knowledge of the early life of and that his name should have been handed
Callistus, and that he was actuated by dis- down with no hint of that schism until
appointment at not having been made bishop words of his own came to light to suggest it ?
on Victor's death. On the other hand, to These improbabilities in the theory hitherto
make a schism of which no one in the East most generally received, amount almost to
seems to have ever heard begin so early impossibilities, though we confess it difficult
ascribes to it such long duration as to be quite to find a satisfactory substitute. We can only
incredible. For it continued after the death suggest that if there were at the time, as there
of Callistus, some time after which the account are grounds for supposing, a Greek congrega-
in the treatise on heresies was plainly written, tion at Rome, the head of it is very likely to
and Dollinger thinks it even possible that it have been Hippolytus, and the head of such
may have continued up to the time of the a congregation might naturally be entrusted
deportation of Pontianus and Hippolytus to with the episcopal power of admitting or
Sardinia. He regards with some favour the excluding members, since doubtful cases could
hypothesis that this banishment might have scarcely be investigated by a Latin-speaking
been designed to deliver the city from dissen- pope. The supposition that he may have
sions and disputes for the possession of received episcopal consecration, besides ex-
churches between the adherents of the rival plaining the enigmatical dignity ^OvQv iirlcrKo-
leaders. It seems to us most likely that TTos ascribed by Photius to Caius, would give
Pontianus and Hippolytus were banished early a less violently improbable account of the
in the reign of Maximin as the two leading claim of Hippolytus to episcopal dignity than
members of the Christian community. We the theory that he had been consecrated as
find it hard to refuse the explanation of von anti-pope. As he was probably the last holder
Dollinger, which makes Hippolytus the first of his anomalous office, it is not surprising if
anti-pope but the difficulties arising from the
; no remembrance was retained of its exact
fact that the existence of so serious a schism constitution ; but it is in the nature of things
has been absolutely unknown to the church probable that the period when the church of
from the 4th cent, to the 19th are so great, Rome was Greek and when it was Latin should
that if we knew of any other way of satis- be separated by a bilingual period and it is
;

factorily explaining the language of Hippoly- not unnatural that the arrangements made
tus we should adopt it in preference. We are during that interval should be forgotten when
not told who consecrated Hippolytus asbishop, the need for them had passed. The severity
but a schism in inaugurating which bishops thus of the persecutions at Rome under Decius and
took the lead must have been a serious one : Valerian seems to have obliterated much of
it lasted at least 5 or 6 years, and, if we make the recollections of the history of the early
it begin in the time of Zephyrinus as we seem part of the century. Whether Hippolytus
bound to do, perhaps 20 years, and it had as was bishop or presbyter, he wrote his attacks
its head the most learned man of the Roman on Callistus in Greek and addressed them to
church and one whose name was most likely Greek-speaking people, and there is no evi-
to be known to foreign churches. Yet the dence that he made any assault on the unity
existence of this schism was absolutely un- of the Latin-speaking church. This may
known abroad. All Cireek lists of the popes, account for the faintness of the impression
as well as the Latin, include Callistus, and which his schismatic language produced and
make no mention of Hippolytus ; and the for the facility with which it was pardoned.
confessed ignorance of Eusebius about the see That the arrogance and intemperance of
of Hippolytus is proof enough that he was not language which he displayed did not deprive
in possession of the key to the difficulty. In him of permanent honour in the Roman church
the Novatianist disputes which commenced is to be accounted for by the leniency with
about 15 years after the death of Hippolytus, which men treat the faults of one who has real
when many would still be alive who could have claims to respect. Hippolytus was a man of
remembered the controversy between him and whose learning the whole Roman church must
Callistus, we find no allusion on either side to have been proud ;he was of undoubted piety,
any such comparative!}' recent schism of and ofcourage which he proved in his good
which a man holding rigorist views resembling confession afterwards. The way of return
those of Novatian was the head. Bearing in would not be made difficult for such a man
mind the excitement caused in the case of when he really wished all dissension to end.
Novatian, we ask, Was the question who was The preceding discussions have told all that
bp. of Rome regarded as a matter of such is known of the life of Hippolytus. We now
purely local concern that controversy could proceed to enumerate his works ;acknow-
go on at Rome for years and the outside world ledging the great help of the list of Caspar!,
know nothing of it, and that although the Taufsymbol und Glaubensregel, iii. 377.
unsuccessful claimant was a person on other (i) Most completely associated with his
grounds very widely known ? Is it conceiv- name is the 16 years' cycle (mentioned by
able, if Hippolytus really set up a rival chair Eusebius and Jerome, u.s.), and the little
to Callistus, that he, whose books and letters treatise in which he explained it. This is
widely circulated in the East, made no at- among the list of works on the statue, 'ATr65et^ii
tempt to enlist on his side the bishops of the XP^vtiiv Tov irdaxo- xai to. iv ti^ wivaKi. That
great Eastern sees ? Or is it likely, if Hippo- the cycle engraved on the statue is undoubted-
lytus had started a long-continued and ly that of Hippolytus is not only proved by
dangerous schism at Rome, that the pre- facts already pointed out and by its interpre-
;

HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS 485


tation of the 70 weeks of Daniel in the manner the episcopate (199-217) of Zephyrinus, to
peculiar to Hippolytus, but is placed beyond lead up to an assault on Noetianism, then the
doubt by its literal agreement with a Syriac most formidable heresy at Rome.
version of the cycle of Hippolytus preserved (5) A work, or rather a fragment, bearing in
in a chronological work by Elias of Nisibis the MS. the title of Homily of Hippolytus
(Lagarde, Analecta Syriaca, p. 89). The cycle against the Heresy of one Noetus, appears on
of 8 years used by Greek astronomers for examination to be not a homily, but the con-
harmonizing lunar and solar years is much clusion of a treatise against more heresies than
older than Hippolytus. What was novel in one. It begins " Certain others are privily
:

the scheme of Hippolytus was his putting two introducing another doctrine, having become
eight- years' cycles together in order to exhibit disciples of one Noetus." It proceeds to
readily the days of the week on which the full refute the Noetian objection that the assertion
moons fell. The cycle of Hippolytus is not of the distinct personality of our Lord contra-
astronomically correct, and, as the Syriac dicts those texts of Scripture which declare
writer correctly states, the error accumulates the absolute unity of God. At the end of this
at the rate of three days for every sixteen- discussion he says, " Now that Noetus also
years' cycle. Of this Hippolytus has no has been refuted, let us come to the setting
suspicion, and he supposed that he could by forth of the truth, that we may establish the
means of his cycle determine all Paschal full truth, against which all so great heresies have
moons future or past. arisen, without being able to say anything."
(2) Eusebius, in the passage where he has The orthodoxy of the tract seems unsuspected
spoken of the work on the Paschal feast just by Tillemont, Ceillier, Lumper, and others.
considered (t6 wepl toG Trdax"- cvyypa/x/xa). It was formally defended by bp- Bull, and was
proceeds with a list of the other works of published by Routh {Ecc. Script. Opusc.) as a
Hippolytus he had met with, among which is lucid exposition of orthodox doctrine. When,
one TTfpi The use of the definite
rod Trdcrxa. however, it came to light that the teaching of
article in the first case might suggest that Hippolytus had been censured by pope
Eusebius only knew one such work, and men- Callistus, Dollinger had no difficulty in point-
tions it the second time in its order in his ing out features in it open to censure. Though
collection of works of Hippolytus. But it Hippolytus acknowledges the Logos to have
may be considered certain that Hippolytus been from eternity dwelling in God as His
treated doubly of the Paschal celebration in : intelligence, he yet appears to teach that there
(i) giving rules for finding Easter in another
; was a definite epoch determined by the will of
writing, which probably was an Easter-day God, prior no doubt to all creation, when that
sermon, treating of its doctrinal import. Logos, which had previously dwelt imperson-
(3) Among the works enumerated on the ally in God, assumed a separate hypostatic
statue is a chronicle. The list runs xpovt/viiv existence, in order that by Him the world
7rp6s "EXXTj/'aj. and it has been questioned should be framed and the Deity manifested
whether this describes two separate works, or to it. Thus, beside God there appeared
a chronicle written with a controversial object another ;
yet not two Gods, but only as light
but the remains of the chronicle itself shew it from light, a ray from the sun. Hippolytus
to have been written for the instruction of also teaches that it was only at the Incarna-
Christians and not as a polemic against tion that He Who before was the Logos
heathenism. The chronicle records the death properly became Son, though previously He
of the emperor Alexander, and therefore the might be called Son in reference to what He
deportation of Hippolytus and Pontianus to was to be. Dollinger imagines that this
Sardinia could not have taken place under emanation doctrine of Hippolytus may, in the
Alexander as the later Papal Catalogue has it, controversies of the time, have been stig-
but under Maximin. It follows, also, that matized as Valentinian, and that thus we
this chronicle is likely to be the latest work of may account for a late authority connecting
Hippolytus, and therefore that a passage this heresy with his name.
common to it and to the later treatise on (6) Refutation of all Heresies. — In 1842
heresy was taken from an earlier work, a Minoides Mynas brought to Paris from Mount
supposition which presents no difficulty. Athos, besides other literary treasures, a 14th-
(4) We pass now from the chronological to cent. MS. containing what purported to be a
the anti-heretical writings ; first, the treatise refutation of all heresies, divided into 10 books.
against all heresies, which may have been the Owing to mutilation, the MS. begins in the
earliest work of Hippolytus. It is mentioned middle of bk. iv. but from the numbering of
;

in the lists of both Eusebius and Jerome, and the leaves it is inferred that the MS. had never
a passage is quoted from it in the Paschal contained any of the first three books. Miller,
Chronicle, though it is not in thelistonthechair who published it in 185 1 for the Univ. of
as we have it, which shews that we cannot Oxford, perceived that it belonged to the work
build any conclusion on the absence of a name published under the name of Origen's Philoso-
therefrom. The fullest account of this treat- phumena by Gronovius, and afterwards in the
ise is given by Photius {Cod. 121). He de- Benedictine ed. of Origen, though it had been
scribes it as a small book, PifiXibapiov, against perceived that the ascription to Origen must
32 heresies, beginning with the Dositheans and be erroneous, as the author claims the dignity
ending with Noetus and the Noetians ; that of high priesthood, and refers to a former work
it purported to be an abstract of discourses of on heresies, while no such work is said to have
Irenaeus was written in a clear, dignified been composed by Origen. Miller in his
;

style, though not observant of Attic propriety. edition reprinted the Philosophumena as bk. i.
It denied St. Paul's authorship of Hebrews. It of the Elenchus, but ascribed the whole to
v.fas probably published in the early years of Origen, an ascription which was generally
486 HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS
rejected. Jacobi, in a German periodical, I ing this tract with the exposition of the truth
put forward the claims of Hippolytus, a theory given at the end of the Refutation, the identity
which was embraced by Bunsen {Hippolytus of doctrine, and sometimes of form of expres-
and his Age, 1852 2nd ed., Christianity and
;
sion, decisively proves common authorship.
Mankind, 1854) and Wordsworth {St. Hippol. The same doctrine is found, that the Logos,
and the Ch. of Rome, 1853, 2nd ed. 1880), and Which had from eternity dwelt in the Deity
completely established by DoUinger {Hippoly- as His unspoken thought, afterwards assumed
tus und Kallistus, 1853). From the book itself a separate hypostatic existence, differing from
we infer that the author lived at Rome during created things not only in priority but also
the episcopates of Zephyrinus and Callistus, because they were out of nothing. He of the
and for some time afterwards ; that he held substance of the Godhead and being the
;

high ecclesiastical office, and enjoyed much fraraer of the universe according to the divine
consideration, being not afraid to oppose his ideas (in the Platonic sense of the word) which
opinion on a theological question to that of the had dwelt in Him from the first. That the
bishop, and able to persuade himself that fear Son's personal divinity was not by the original
of him restrained the bishop from a course on necessity of His nature, but given by an act
which he otherwise would have entered. Hip- of the divine will, is stated more offensively
polytus satisfies these conditions better than than in the earlier tract. He says to his
any one else for whom the authorship has been reader, " God has been pleased to make you
claimed. Further, the hypothesis that Hip- a man, not a god. If He had willed to make
polytus was the author gives the explanation you a god He could have done so you have ;

of the prevalent Eastern belief that he was bp. the example of the Logos."
of Rome, of the tradition preserved by Pru- {e) The Treatise on Antichrist. —
In c. ii. of
dentius that he had been once in schism from this treatise (Lagarde, p. 2), when telling how
the church, and of the singular honour of a the prophets treated not only of the past but
statue done him ; for as the head of a party of the present and the future, he uses language
his adherents would glorify his learning and in some respects verbally coinciding with what
prolific industry. That the work on heresies is said in the Elenchus (x. 33, p. 337).
connects itself with six distinct works of Hip- The evidence which has been produced
polytus makes the ascription certain. A trans, amounts to a demonstration of the Hippoly-
of the Refutation and of other fragments is tine authorship. The title of the work would
in the vol. A post. Fathers in Ante-Nic. Lib. be (pL\oao(pov/j.€va •^ Kara iraaQi' aipiaeuiv
(T. & T. Clark). iXeyxos the name Philosophumena properly
;

(a) The Treatise against the Thirty-two applying to the first 4 books, the Elenchus
Heresies. —The author begins by saying that to the last 6. Its chief value to us consists,
he had a long time before (TrdXat) published in addition to the light cast on the disputes in
another work against heresy, with less minute the church of Rome at the beginning of the
exposure of the secret doctrines of the heretics 3rd cent., in its extracts from otherwise un-
than that which he now proposes to make. known Gnostic writings, inserted by the
Of those for whom the authorship has been author to shame these sects by an exposure of
claimed, Hippolytus is the only one whom we their secret tenets. Its attack on the charac-
know to have published a previous work on ter of pope Callistus was fatal to its circulation.
heresies. The time between the two works No doubt when a reconciliation was effected
would be 20 years at least. at Rome all parties desired to suppress the
lb) The Treatise on the Universe.— At the end book. Bk. i. was preserved as containing a
of the Refutation (x. 32, p. 334, Plummer's harmless and useful account of the doctrines
trans.) the author refers to a previous work of heathen philosophers and bk. x., which
;

of his, irepl rf/i tou irafrbs ovaias, and among presented no cause for offence (there being
the works ascribed to Hippolytus on the statue nothing to indicate that the heretic Callistus
we read, irpbi "EWijvas kuI wpbi llXdrwca i) Kai mentioned in it was intended for the bp. of
irepl TOU Travrds. Photius remarks that the Rome), also had some circulation and was seen
author of the work on the universe also wrote by Theodoret and Photius. But these two
the Labyrinth, according to a statement at the writers are the only ones in whom we can trace
end of that work. Now, bk. x. begins with any knowledge of bk. x., which was certainly
the words, " The labyrinth of heresies." We not used by Epiphanius. The rest of the work
may, then, reasonably conclude that what is mentioned by no extant writer, and but for
Photius knew as the Labyrinth was our bk. x., the chance preservation of a single copy in the
which was known by its first word. East would have altogether perished.
(c) The Chronicle and the Treatise on the (7) The Little Labyrinth. —
Eusebius {H. E.

Psalms. The enumeration of the 72 nations V. 27) gives some long extracts from an anony-
against the heresy of Artemon.
among whom the earth was divided (x. 30), mous work
and which the author states that he had Internal evidence shews that the writer was a
previously given in other books, precisely member of the Roman church and speaks of
agrees with that in the Chronicle of Hippoly- things that occurred in the episcopate of
tus ; and though this chronicle was probably Zephyrinus as having happened in his own
later than the Refutation, Hippolytus wrote time. On the other hand, Zephyrinxis is
commentaries on Genesis, where this enumera- described as Victor's successor, language not
tion would naturally be given in treating of likely to be used if Zephyrinus were at the time
c. X., and he appears to have been, like many bishop, or even the last preceding bishop.
prolific writers, apt to repeat himself. This The writer's recollection too does not appear
same enumeration is given in his commentary to go back to the episcopate of Victor. The
on the Psalms (No. 29 infra). date would therefore be soon after the epis-
(d) The Tract against Noetus. —
On compar- copate of Callistus. Theodoret (Haer. Fab.
A

HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS 487

ii. 5) refers to the same work as known in his has been supposed that Caius was the
It
time under the name of the Little Labyrinth by Hippolytus, who ascribes
writer, replied to
and attributed by some to Origen ;
though
the Apocalypse and the Gospel to Cerinthus ;

Thcodoret considers this assumption disproved but the arguments for supposing that Caius
by the difference of style. Photius {Cod. 48) rejected the Apocalypse are inconclusive, and
ascribes to Caius a book called the Labyrinth, it is highly improbable that he, an orthodox
which we have identified with the summary member of the Roman church, rejected the
of the Elenchiis. He does not mention the Gospel of St. John.
Little Labyrinth, but adds that it was said that (13) One argument in support of the view
Caius had composed a special treatise against just referred to is that Ebed Jesu (u.s.)
the heresy of Artemon. We have no reason enumerates among the works of Hippolytus
to think that the Labyrinth of Photius and the Chapters (or heads) against Caius, which, it
Little Labyrinth of Theodoret were the same has been conjectured, were identical with (12).
;

on the contrary, the latter was probably iden- But Ebed Jesu reckons the two works as dis-
tical with the treatise against Artemon, which tinct. What other heresy of Caius Hippolytus
Photius expressly distinguishes from his Laby- could have confuted is unknown.
rinth. Internal evidence, and the fact that (14) It is hard to draw the line between
we have some external evidence for the author- controversial and dogmatic books. Thus,
ship of Caius and none for that of Hippolytus, with regard to the treatise cited by Anastasius
cause us to give our verdict for Caius. Sinaita (Lagarde.No. 9, p. 90), wepl dvacrdcrecjis
(8) The Work against Bero and Helix. —Kal d(p6ap<rlas, which may be the same as that
certain Anastasius of the 7th cent, is the described on the statue as irepl Qeov Kal crapK6$
earliest authority for designating Hippolytus dvaardaeios and by Jerome as de Resurrec-
as bp. of Portus. He so calls him in sending tione, we cannot tell whether it was a simple
to Rome extracts made by him at Constanti- explanation of Christian doctrine or directed
nople from what purported to be a treatise of against the errors of heretics or heathens.
Hippolytus, irfpi deoXoyias Kal (rapKuxreui, (15) A controversial character more clearly
against the above-named heretics, his adver- belongs to another work on the same subject,
saries having hindered Anastasius frorn getting a fragment of which is preserved in Syriac
possession of the entire work. Dollinger (p. (Lagarde, Anal. Syr. p. 87), and contains what
295) has given conclusive reasons for regarding Stephen Gobar (Photius, Cod. 232) noted as a
this as no work of Hippolytus, but as a forgery peculiarity of Hippolytus, found also in both
not earlier than the 6th cent. The technical his treatises against heresy, viz. that he makes
language of these fragments is also that of the Nicolas the deacon himself, and not any mis-
controversies of the 5th cent., and quite unlike understood saying of his, the origin of the
that of the age of Hippolytus. It was doubt- errors of the Nicolaitanes. Here he is charged
less Anastasius who supplied another passage with maintaining that the resurrection has
from the discourse wepi deo\oylas produced at passed alreadv and that Christians are to
the Lateran Council in 649. expect none other than that which took place
(9) A Syriac list of the writings of Hippoly- when they believed and were baptized.
tus given by Ebed Jesu, a writer of the very (16) One work at least Hippolytus
specially
beginning of the 14th cent. (Assemani, Bibl. directed to the heathen, and though this is not
Or. iii. I, p. 15), contains a work whose Syriac included in the list of Jerome he probably
title is translated by Ecchelensis de Regimine, alludes to it (Ep. ad Magnum, i. 423) where
by Assemani de Dispensatione. Adopting he classes Hippolytus with others who wrote
" "
the latter rendering and taking " dispensatio contra gentes." On the chair we read
^

to be equivalent to oiKovofxla. we should con- XpoviKCiv irp6s"E\\rtvas Kal irpbi UXdTWva rj Kal
clude its subject to be our Lord's Incarnation. irepl Tov wavTos. We might take 7rp6j"EXX77J'as
It may therefore be identical with (8). If the as a distinct work, or with what precedes or
other rendering be adopted, the work would with what follows. That the last is the true
relate to church government, and might be construction appears both from the title given
identical with some part of (21). in one of the MSS., in which a fragment is
(10) The Treatise against Marcion. —
Men- preserved, 6 X6yo's 7rp6s"EXXT?i'a5 6 iniyeypap.-
tioned in the catalogues of Eusebius and fjiivoi Kara UXdrwva irepl ttjs tov irayrbs airlas,
Jerome, but nothing of it remains. and from the fact that the same fragment
(11) On the statue is enumerated a work contains addresses to the Greeks. This, then,
TTfpt Toryadov Kal irbdev rb KaKdv. This may is evidently the treatise irtpl t^s rev wavrbs
well have been an anti-Marcionite composition, ovulas, mentioned at the end of the Elenchus,
and possibly that mentioned by Eusebius (10). and of which Photius speaks in a passage
{12) Defence of the Gospel and Apocalypse of already referred to {Cod. 48). He says that
St. John. —
We may probably class among the treatise was in two short books, that it
anti-heretical writings the work described on shewed that Plato was inconsistent ; that the
the chair as vir^p rod Kara 'l(jjdvv7)v evayyeXiov Platonic philosopher Alcinous had spoken
Kal aTroKa\v\peo}i, and in the list of Ebed Jesu falsely and absurdly about the soul, matter,
as " a defence of the Apocalypse and Gospel and the resurrection; and that the Jewish
of the apostle and evangelist John." The nation wasmuch older than the Greek. The
work on the Apocalypse mentioned by Jerome theory of the universe embodied in this work
we take to be different, and we notice it among made all things consist of the four elements,
the exegetical works. Hippolytus in his earth, air, fire, or water. Things formed of
extant remains constantly employs the Apoc- more elements than one are subject to death
alypse, and his regard for it is appealed to by by the dissolution of their component parts,
Andrew of Caesarea (Max. Bibl. Patr. v. 590). but things formed of one element {e.g. angels.
488 HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS
formed of fire alone) are indissoluble and introductory remarks on prophetic inspiration.
immortal. Angels also have no female, for Antichrist is almost exclusively the subject.
from water the generative principle is derived. The later title has some justification in the
Man is made of all four elements, his soul parallel between Christ and Antichrist, with
being formed of air and called xpuxv, because which he begins, shewing how the deceiver had
this element is colder than the other three. sought in all things to liken himself to the Son
The principal extant fragment contains a of God. He was to be, like Christ, a lion
description of Hades as a place underground (Deut. xxxiii. 22), a king, a lamb (Rev. xiii.
where souls are detained until the judgment. 11), he was to come in the form of a man, and
The gate is guarded by an archangel. When to be of the circumcision he was to send out
;

the angels appointed to that service conduct false apostles and gather in a people, and as
thither righteous souls, they proceed to the the Lord had given a seal to those who believe
right to a place of light called Abraham's in Him, so should he, etc. The writer then
bosom, where they enjoy continued present quotes fully all the prophecies of Antichrist,
pleasures with the expectation of still greater and concludes that he shall be of the tribe of
happiness in the future. The wicked, on the Dan that Daniel's four kingdoms are the
;

other hand, are hurried down to the left into Babylonian, Median, Grecian, and Roman ;

a place of darkness where is the lake of fire, that the ten toes of the image are ten kings
into which no one has yet been cast, but which among whom the Roman empire should be
is prepared for the future judgment. There divided, that from among these Antichrist
they not only suffer present temporary punish- should arise and overthrow three of the kings,
ments, but are tormented by the sight and viz. those of Egypt, Libya, and Ethiopia, and
smoke of that burning lake and the horrible make an expedition against Tyre and Berytus,'
expectation of the punishment to come. The and then should gain the submission of the
sight of the righteous also punishes them, Jews, hoping to obtain vengeance by their
between whom and them a great gulf is fixed ;
means that he should shew himself forth as
;

and while the bodies of the righteous will rise God, and persecute to the death those who
renewed and glorified, theirs will be raised refuse to worship him that he should reign
;

with all their diseases and decay. Bunsen three 3'ears and a half and then that he and
conjectures that Hippolytus may have taken his kingdom should be destroyed by Christ's
some points for which he has not Scripture second coming. For the problem of the num-
authority from the Apoalypse of Peter. ber of the beast, while other solutions men-
(17) The Demonstration against the Jews. — tioned by Irenaeus are noticed, that of Aaretvos
The Greek text of a fragment of a work bearing is preferred. This is one of many coincidences
this title was first published by Fabricius (vol. shewing that Hippolytus used the treatise of
ii. i) from a copy supplied by Montfaucon from Irenaeus against heresies and enumerated
a Vatican MS. There is no external evidence (§ iv.) by Overbeck in an able monograph on
to confirm the ascription in the MS. of this this tract Quaestiontim Hippol. specimen.
work to Hippolytus. The mutilated list on Overbeck discusses also the points of contact
the chair begins -ovs but it is bare conjecture
;
between this tract and Origen, deciding that
which completes this into -n-pbs 'lovoaiovs. these may be accounted for without supposing
There is nothing in the fragment which forbids either writer indebted to the other.
us to suppose Hippolytus the writer. It shews
(20) The text of a homily on the H
oh Theo-
that the Jews have no reason to glory in the phany was communicated to Fabricius by
sufferings they inflicted on Jesus of Nazareth,
Gale from a MS. still preserved at Cambridge.
for it had been foretold that the Messiah should
There is also extant a Syriac translation of
so suffer, and these sufferings had been the great part of this homily, viz. to the end of
c. 7 (Wright, Catal. of Syr. MSS. of Brit. Mus.
cause of the misery afterwards endured by the
Jewish nation. ii. 842). The ascription of the MSS. is not
We
pass now to dogmatic writings.
confirmed by any external evidence, nor is
(18)
this homily mentioned in any list of the
Jerome, in his list of the writings of Hippoly-
tus, gives " UpoaofiikLa de laude Domini sal-
Hippolytine works, nor quoted by any ancient
author. We do not, however, see anything
vatoris." This is the homily delivered in the
presence of Origen.
in itwhich Hippolytus might not' have
and Wordsworth has pointed out a
(19) The Work on Antichrist. Of all the
writings of Hippolytus this is the only one
— written,
remarkable coincidence with the Refutation,
viz. that in both man is spoken of as becoming
extant in a perfect state, or nearly so. It
a god by the gift of new birth and immortality.
appears in Jerome's list with the title de Anti-
(21) On the chair is enumerated Trept
christa ; Photius calls it Trept Xpio-roi) Kal XapiCMclTUJt' aTToaToKiKT] TrapdonaLS. It is
dyTixpicTToi: ; and the title it bears in the MS. doubtful whether this is the title of one work
from which the first printed edition was made or two. For various speculations see Fabri-
IS irepl Tov cT(>}T7}pos rj/uuiv 'Irjaov Xptarov Kal irepl cius, p. 83. The most probable theory is that
Tov avTixpio-Tov. The work is addressed to it treated of Montanist claims to inspiration.
oneTheophilus, and the author cautions him (22) On the chair we have words which
against communicating to unbehevers what have been read y'Sai ei's iraaas ras yparpdi. If
he was about to teach him, quoting Paul's the line describes only a single work it may
directions to Timothy, " the things thou hast denote hymns, one in praise of each of the
heard of me commit thou to faithful men." books of Scripture and perhaps giving a
The doctrine of the treatise as to the coming poetical account of its contents.
overthrow of the Roman power would give
good reason for this caution. Jerome's title
(23) On the Hexaemeron. —
We now pass to
the exegetical writings. This work is given
best describes the treatise, of which, after some in the lists of Euseblus and Jerome. The
HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS 489

latter states (Ep. liv., ad Pammach. et Ocean. (31, 32) Jerome enumerates a commentary
vol. i. p. 525) that Ambrose had made use of on Ecclesiastes both Eusebius and Jerome
;

it in his work on the same subject. one on the Song of Songs. Lagarde gives one
(24) ei's TO. fiera ttju i^arjfxepov (Eus.). In fragment from the former (No. 136, p. 200) and
Genesim (Hieron.). From this we suppose the four from the latter (No. 35, p. 200 and ^na/. ;

account of the 72 nations to have been taken. Syr. p. 87). One of these states that Hezekiah
(25) On Exodus. — This we only know from suppressed the works of Solomon on natural
Jerome's list. No quotations have been pre- history, because the people sought in them for
served, though Magistris makes a doubtful the recovery of their diseases, insteadof seeking
suggestion that Theodoret's citations from the help from God.
X670S eh TTjv i^Or]v Tr)v fjLey d.\-r)v are from a (33. 34. 35) Jerome enumerates a commen-
commentary on the Song of Moses (Ex. xv.). tary on Isaiah ; Eusebius one on parts of
(26) There is extant a fragment (Lagarde, Ezekiel. Assemani states [Bibl. Or. i. 607)
51) of a commentary on " the blessings of that there is Syriac testimony to the existence
Balaam " and Trithemius also ascribes to of one on Jeremiah.

;

Hippolytus a commentary on Numbers. An (36) On Daniel. In Jerome's list. It is the


Arabic catena on the Pentateuch, of which a subject of an article by Photius is quoted by
;

portion was pub. by Fabricius, ii. 33-44, and several other writers, and large fragments of
the whole of Gen. by Lagarde, M aterialien zur it remain. In a most valuable contribution
Kritik und Geschichte des Pentateuchs, contains to Hippolytine literature, Bardenhewer (Frei-
numerous extracts from an Hippolytus whom burg, 1877) collects all the notices of this
it describes as the expounder of the Targum. work, discusses the different extant fragments,
It is generally admitted that the scholia do not and restores the original as far as possible.
belong to our Hippolytus. Catenae quote passages from the commentary
(27, 28) Theodoret cites several passages of Hippolj'tus on Susanna, but the early lists
from the Discourse on Elkanah and Hannah. do not mention this as a separate treatise, and
Another part of Samuel was the subject of a Bardenhewer is probably right in thinking
special treatise called by Jerome de Saul ei that it was the commencement of the commen-
Pythonissa, and in Gk. et'j tt)v eyyaarplixvdov, tary on Daniel, to which book that of Susanna
for so an imperfect line on the chair is gener- was then commonly prefixed. The list of
ally, and, as we believe, correctly, completed. Ebed-Jesu attributes to Hippolytus an exposi-
(29) The Commentary on the Psalms. — The tion of Susanna and of Daniel the Little.
eixstence of this work is testified by Jerome This writer's list of O.T. books includes
and by the inscription on the chair. Yet Daniel, Susanna, and Daniel the Little. There
elsewhere when writing to Augustine Jerome is no evidence what is meant by the last.
gives a list of commentators on the Psalms Hippolytus supposes Susanna to have been the
(Ep. cxii., vol. i. p. 754), leaving out Hippoly- daughter of the high-priest Hilkiah (II. Kings
tus and counting Eusebius as the next Greek xxii. 4) and sister to the prophet Jeremiah,
commentator after Origen, either through and he probably, like Africanus, identified
mere forgetfulness or because Jerome had only her husband with the Jehoiachin who was
read, of Hippolytus, homilies on particular kindly treated by Evil-Merodach. Hippolytus
Psalms and some general observations on thought, like so many of the Fathers, that the
the whole book. Theodoret quotes from persons, institutions, and events of O.T. in-
the commentary on Pss. ii. xxiii. and xxiv., cluded, beside their literal meaning, a typical
and on the (^5rj fieydXij, which may mean Ps. representation of things corresponding in the
cxix. These quotations may be from separate new dispensation. The remains of the
homilies, and not from the present work. A commentary on Daniel contain a theory at-
fragment published by Bandini comments tested by Photius, that our Lord had come in
on Ps. Ixxviii. Several other fragments of the year of the world 5500, and that its end
doubtful genuineness are given by Magistris should be in the 3'ear 6000, that is, not until
(Migne, x. 722). Hippolytus classifies the 500 years after the Incarnation. In Scripture
Psalms according to their authors and in- proof of this calculation, Hippolytus appeals
scriptions, and explains that they are all to the 5| cubits which he finds in Ex. xxv. 10 ;

called David's because he originated the to the sixth hour, John xix. 14, which denotes
institution of temple psalmody, as the book half a day or 500 years and to Rev. xvii.;

of Esther is called after her, and not after 10. This 5500 years must be understood as
Mordecai, of whom it has much more to tell, round numbers, for the Chronicle of Hippoly-
because Esther, byb«r.act of self-sacrifice, was tus counts the exact number of years as 5502.
the originator of the~~-vriiole deliverance. (37) On Zechariah. Known only from
Hippolytus points out that the Psalms are not Jerome's list and the prologue to his com-

in chronological order, and supposes that mentary on Zechariah.
Ezra did not find them all at once and (38) On Matthew.
placed them in books as he found them. The the prologue to Jerome's commentary on

We know of this from
Greek, on the contrary, supposes that the Matthew and Theodoret quotes from a dis-
;

chronological order was deranged to establish course on the parable of the talents, which,
a mystical connexion between the number of however, may have been a separate homily.
a Psalm and its subject.
follows Hippolytus.
Eusebius here (39) On Luke. —
Two fragments are given by
Mai (Lagarde, p. 202), and Theodoret has
(30^ On Proverbs. Mentioned in Jerome's preserved part of a homily on the two thieves.
list. Some fragments have been preserved in (40) On the Apocalypse. —
In the list of Jer-
catenae (Lagarde, pp. 196-199). Others pub. ome, and mentioned by Jacob of Edessa (Eph.
by Mai {Bib. Nov. Pat. vii.) will be found In Syr. 0pp. Syr. i. 192) and Syncellus, 358.
Migne (p. 6), Some fragments are preserved in an Arabic
490 HIPPOLYTUS ROMANUS HONORIUS, FLAVIUS AUGUSTUS
Catena on the Apocalypse (Lagarde, Anal. pray be quiet.' And he built an altar of
Syr. app. pp. 24-27). It appears that Hippo- marble there to appease the disquieted saint."
lytus (who is described as pope of Rome) Literature. —
Arts, on Hippolytus are to be
interpreted the woman (Rev. xii. i) to be the found in Tillem. vol. iv. Ceillier, vol. i.
; ;

church the sun with which she is clothed, our


;
Fabr. Bibl. Gr. vii. 183, ed. Harles, where is
Lord; the moon, John the Baptist; the the best account of the older bibliography.
twelve stars, the twelve apostles ; the two The discovery of the Refutation made a good
wings on which she was to fly, hope and love. deal of the older literature antiquated. We
He understood xii. 10 to speak, not of an actual have already referred to some of the more im-
swallowing up by the earth of the hostile portant writings which that discovery elicited.
armies, but only that they wandered about in The more important special dissertations on
despair. He understood by the wound of the the other works have been referred to under
beast (xiii. 3) the contempt and refusal of their respective sections. The most important
obedience with which Antichrist would be discussion on the life and works of Hippolytus
received by many at first and bv the healing
; is that in vol. xi. of part i. of Bp. Lightfoot's
of it the subsequent submission of the nations. Apost. Fathers, pp. 137-477. [g.s.]
The two horns (xiii. 11) are the law and the Hippolytus (5) Aug. 10 (Bas. Men.), Aug.
:

prophets, for this beast will be a lamb out- 13 {Mart. Vet. Rom. Usuard.). An apocryphal
wardly, though inwardly a ravening wolf. martyr, first mentioned in the 5th or 6th cent.
Of the number of the beast, beside the Ire- His story, as given in the martyrology of Ado,
naean solutions, Lateinos, Euanthas, and is taken from the spurious acts of St. Lauren-
Teitan, he gives one of his own, Dantialos, a tius the Roman archdeacon, where we are told
name possibly suggested by the theory that that that saint, when arrested, was delivered'
Antichrist was to be of the tribe of Dan. The by the prefect Valerian into the custody of
kings of the East (xvi. 12) come to the support Hippolytus, a high military officer, who was
of Antichrist. Armageddon
the valley of converted and at once baptized by him, and
is
Jehoshaphat. The five kings (xvii. 13) are thereupon sentenced to be torn asunder by
Nebuchadnezzar, Cyrus, Darius, Alexander wild horses. DoUinger, in Hippolytus and
and his four successors. The next is the Callistus (Plummer's trans.), pp. 28-39 and
Roman empire, whose time was not yet com- 51-60, discusses the rise and development of
pleted ;the seventh, who had not yet come, this legend, which has largely helped to con-
was Antichrist. fuse the story of the genuine Hippolytus, the
This enumeration includes all the works for Roman presbyter and writer of the 3rd cent.
which there is evidence of Hippolytine author- iq.v.) (cf. Bunsen's Christianity and Mankind,
ship, unless we add the letters with which i. 426). DoUinger fixes the composition of this
it would seem Eusebius was acquainted. The story between the time of pope Liberius and
list of genuine writings is quite enough to that of Leo the Great, a period of about 70
establish the immense literary activity of years. The whole subject is in a state of great
Hippolytus, especially as an interpreter of confusion in the martyrologies, which Dol-
Scripture and his labours must have given linger has striven, with his usual critical power
;

a great impulse to the study of God's word. and vast knowledge, to arrange in some con-
As a writer he must be pronounced active sistent order. Yet the impartial reader must
rather than able or painstaking. Yet he must feel sorely perplexed between the opposing
be admitted to deserve the reverence his theories of DoUinger and Bunsen. (Cf. for the
literary labours gained from his contempora- more modern traditions regarding this martyr,
ries and the honour paid him at his death. For Aug. Hare's Walks in Rome, ii. 139.) [g.t.s.]
centuries afterwards his name was obscured Honorius (1), Flavius Augustus, emperor,
;

but his glory blazed out again when in the b. 384, d. 423. A full account of him is given
time of Charlemagne his relics were trans- in the Diet, of Classical Biogr. He was de-
ferred to France. For some interesting par- clared emperor of the West in 394 at Milan,
ticulars of this translation see Benson, Journ. where he remained almost uninterruptedly
of Classical and Sacred Philology, i. 190. We till 399. He and his brother Arcadius seem
quote his account of the visit of pope Alex- to have been only ill-informed spectators
ander III. to his shrine in the church of St. of the tremendous events passing around
Denys in 11 59. " On the threshold of one of them.
the chapels he paused to ask, Whose relics '
There is an important enactment against
it contained ? Those of St. Hippolytus,' paganism in the first year of Honorius's reign
' '

was the answer. I don't believe it


'
I don't —
(Cod. Theod. XVI. x. 13) which forbids all
believe it (' Non credo
' —
non credo '), replied sacrifices and apparently all public assemblage
the infallible authority. The bones of St. for pagan worship. The legislation against
'

Hippolytus were never removed from the holy heresy is varied and stringent. In XVI. v. 25
city.' But St. Hippolytus, whose dry bones of the Theodosian Code all Theodosius's co-
apparently had as little reverence for the ercive edicts were re-enacted in their sharpest
spiritual progeny of Zephyrinus and Callistus form and all concessions revoked. The Euno-
as the ancient bishop's tongue and pen had mians in particular were excluded from rights
manifested towards these saints themselves, of military service, legal testimony and in-
was so very angry that he rumbled his bones heritance, though this special severity was
inside the reliquary with a noise like thunder relaxed soon after (v. 27), in accordance with
(' ut rugitus tonitrui putaretur'). To what Theodosius's edicts (XVI. v. 22-24). All
lengths he might have gone if rattling had not heretical congregations were forbidden, and
sufficed we dare not conjecture. But the their celebration of the holy mysteries, with
pope, falling on his knees, exclaimed in terror, ordination either of bishops or presbyters,
'
I believe, O my Lord Hippolytus I believe —
altogether interdicted. Two more of the five
;
HONORIUS, FLAVIUS AUGUSTUS HONORIUS, FLAVIUS AUGUSTUS 491

severe edicts of this year provided that slight or monk was to assert sanctuary by forcible
error or deviation (" vel levi argumento a defence for condemned criminals (XI. xxx.
tramite Catholica") shall be unsparingly 7). Bishops were recommended to ordain
crushed. Penalties for neglect of statutes on clergy from the monastic orders (VI. ii. 32).
heresy are made capital (XVI. v. 28), and c. 29 Anibrose had successfully resisted the re-
is inquisitorial and applies to all employes and introduction of the altar or statue of Victory
officials, civil or military. All found to be into the senate-house in 384 ;
and by 399 it
" culpae hujus affines " are to be expelled may have appeared to Honorius's advisers
from the service and the city. This is dated that the time was come when paganism might
Nov. 23, Constantinople, so that Arcadius, or be hastened out of existence. The paganism
rather Eutropius, may be its author. of the Roman senate and people was connected
It is difficult to say how strictly the Hono- with the proudest associatifins of their public
rian edicts against heresy were carried out, but and domestic history, and it lingered long in
no such persecution as that of St. Chrysostom the old patrician houses of the metropolis and
is laid to the account of the emperor of the among the rustic population. This was a
West. There is doubt, however, that the eccle- source of weakness in keeping Christian
siastical legislation of 396 and following years emperors away from Rome. It may have
was very severe. On March 2, 396 {T. C. been intended to end this division by direct
XVI. V. 30), all heretical places of assemblage attempts at suppressing paganism. The
were confiscated and all meetings interdicted. death-struggle of a paganism long fostered, and
By edicts 31 and 32 the Eunomian clergy were quite without real devotion, contributed to the
banished and inquiries were directed to be made final overthrow of Rome. Its immediate
after their leaders. XVI. vii. 6 deprived all result in the life 'of Honorius seems to have
apostates of testamentary power, their pro- been the undermining of Stilicho. The
perty was to go to their natural heirs and by ; eunuch influence in both Eastern and Western
XVI. X. 14 all privileges of pagan priesthood courts had always been against him. There
or ministry were done away- The Jews were seems no doubt that Stilicho was opposed to
protected by three edicts (XVI. viii. 11-13). anything which thinned his muster-rolls and
The following edicts on church matters weakened the hearts of his followers. Athan-
extend over 397 and 398. The Apollinarians asius had advised Jovian (Broglie, L'Eglise et
were banished from Constantinople (T. C. V Empire romain, vol. v. p. 362) to bear with
XVI. v. 33) on Apr. i, which was the only error to bear witness to truth as emperor,
;

coercive measure of the year, and does not but trust for its victory to the God of truth.
belong to Honorius. By XVI. ii. 30, Jan. 31, Stilicho hardly reached this, as is proved by
all ancient privileges were confined to bishops the many laws against heretics and idolaters
and clergy, with the proviso " Nihil extra- in the code but the accusations of Orosius
;

ordinarii muneris ecclesiae, vel sordidae (vi. 37) and the hostility of Zosimus on the
functionis agnoscatur," repeated in XI. xvi. pagan side seem to justify Gibbon's honour-
22 (June 4). The Jews were protected from able estimate of him. In any case he had a
popular tumults (XVI. viii. 12, 13), and equal few years of glory to come, and his great
privileges and respect shewn to high-priests enemy was preparing for the defeats of Pol-
and patriarchs as to the higher Christian lentia and Verona. In 398-399 Alaric was
clergy. In 398 there were severe statutes on declared master-general of Eastern Illyricum
heresy. By T. C. XVI. v. 34 (Constantinople, by Arcadius, and raised on barbarian bucklers
but in Honorius's fourth consulship) Euno- as king of Visigoths, with one man only be-
mian and Montanist clergy were banished from tween him and Rome [de Bella Getico, 503).
all cities and deprived of civic rights. If Between 400 and 403 he had crossed Pannonia
detected performing their rites in the country to the Julian Alps, taken Aquileia, subdued
they were to be banished and the building Istria and Venetia, and was threatening Milan.
confiscated, their books seized and burned, Honorius, now in his 15th year, thought only
and keeping them was a capital offence. The of flight into Gaul but Alaric, overthrown
;

Manicheans were specially attacked a.d. 399 by Stilicho at PoUentia and Verona, was
(c. 35), and those who harboured them were allowed or compelled to retreat, and Honorius
threatened. C. 36 allowed testamentary went with Stilicho to Rome to celebrate the
rights to the Eunomians, but forbad them last triumph of the empire (a.d. 404). The
to assemble or to celebrate the mysteries. customary games took place with great
Their clergy (" ministri sceleris, quos falso magnificence, and on this occasion St. Tele-
nomine antistites vocant) were to be banished. machus sacrificed himself by attempting to
Clerical rights of sanctuary for criminals were separate the gladiators. Honorius seems not
formally refused {de Poenis, ix. xl. 16), but to have prevented their exhibition, though
intercession was permitted. This claim seems there are traces of an attempt to substitute
to have been pressed by the clerical and hunting scenes, races, and grand cavalry
monastic body by violent means, which the displays, among which seems to have been the
authorities had difficulty in restraining. ancient game of Troy. After a stay of some
Cases in which " tanta clericorum ac monach- months at Rome, during which he appears to
orum audacia est, ut bellum velint potius have honestly done all in his power to con-
quam judicium " were to be referred to the ciliate the senate, clergy, and people, Honorius
emperor for severer adjudication. Bishops determined (a.d. 404) to fix his residence in the
were to punish the offences of monks. Debt- fortress of Ravenna, which was almost im-
ors, public and private, including some un- pregnable on the land side and afforded easy
happy curiales, had claimed sanctuary in escape by sea. The Milanese entertained an
churches (IX. xlv. 3). They were to be affection for Honorius, and desired his return ;

removed " manu mox injecta." No cleric but he had soon good reason to feel that his
492 HONORIUS, FLAVIUS AUGUSTUS HONORIUS, FLAVIUS AUGUSTUS
choice of residence had been a wise one, both rins," —
now dominant in Constantinople Nov.
strategically and for his own comfort. Tillemont considers that all these edicts refer
The anti-pagan legislation of 399-400 to the tumults which took place in 404 on the
prepared for the consummating decree of persecution of St. Chrysostom, except that
confiscation in 408. T. C. XVI. x. 15 pro- which refers to officials, issued in Jan. The
hibited sacrifice, but restrained the destruction saint was not exiled till June.
of temples, as monumental public works. In There were 5 religious decrees out of 18 in
July there was an edict (c. 16) for the de- 405. Two related to the Manichean and
struction of rural temples (" sine turba ac Donatist heresies, former statutes being put
tumultu "). Some concession was found in force or threatened :
" Una sit catholica
necessary, for, in Sept., Tit. x. 17 allowed the veneratio, una Salus sit, Trinitatis par sibique
usual civic festivals and days of enjoyment congruens Sanctitas expetatur." XVI. vi. 3,
("festoset communem laetitiam"),but strictly 14 were against the repetition of baptism,
without sacrifice. This is commented on by which some persons seem to have thought
Gibbon in his 23rd chap., on the " Decay of might be repeated not only after heresy, but
Paganism," vol. iii. p. 16, where he points for forgiveness of repeated sins. Persons
out how offerings of produce without sacrifice guilty of rebaptizing others were deprived of
might be used, and the various evasions by all their property, which was, however, secured
which absolutely pagan celebration might to their heirs if orthodox. The contumacious
elude Christian rule. Such usages might were threatened with loss of all civil rights, and
remain for ages, and be carried bodily into there was a heavy fine for connivance.
Christian country life by popular custom. The irruption of the pagan and ferocious
This is matter of historical experience in all Radagaisus is dated by Gibbon 406, by Tille-
countries ; and the May or Beltane, and other mont 405. He had to capitulate and was be-
strange rites of the Teutonic races, bear wit- headed, and so many of his Germans were sold
ness to it in our own day. There was a final as slaves that their price fell to a single gold
injunction this year (c. 18) against destroying piece. After this invasion and in his desper-
temples, if sacrifices in them had been thor- ate circumstances as the last general of Italy's
oughly discontinued. XVI. v. 35 was a last army, Stilicho apparently turned towards
severe edict against the Manicheans and their his worthiest enemy and felt the necessity of
harbourers in Africa (June). In July (c. 36) making terms with Alaric. Stilicho was slain
the Eunomians were released from intestacy at Ravenna Aug. 23, 408.
and allowed freedom of movement. Their Alaric now (Oct. 408) crossed the Alps on
meetings were still forbidden and their profane pretence of a large claim of money. Honorius
mysteries made a capital offence. As the fled to Ravenna, and Alaric besieged Rome for
crudest form of Arianism, this heresy seems the first time, but accepted a large ransom
to have specially vexed Honorius and his in 409 and withdrew into Tuscany. He re-
advisers. An edict {de Religione, XVI. xi. i) newed the siege in the same year, and Rome
gave bishops a claim to special authority in submitted. Attains was proclaimed emperor
causes involving religious questions. " Quoties by him. In 410 the capture and sack of Rome
de religione agitur episcopos convenit agitare." followed. Alaric died before the end of the
Ecclesiastics were to find substitutes in the year, and in 412 the Goths under Adolf with-
curiae, appeals being allowed (XI. xxx. 58, 59). drew into Gaul, where Adolf remained until
In A.D. 400 the games were forbidden during driven into Spain about 3 years after.
Lent and the week before Easter, also on A.D. 407, 408. T.C. XVi. V. 40, 41 included
Christmas Day and Epiphany. Civic banish- the Manichean, Phrygian, and Priscillianist
ment and exclusion from society was decreed sects in the liabilities of the Donatists, i.e. loss
on bishops and clergy deprived or degraded of rights of property and succession, gift, sale,
by their fellow-clergy for seditious conduct contract, will, and right to restrain orthodox
(XVI. ii. 35). Sons of priests were not to be slaves from worship. Heresy was expressly
forced into the ministry (XII. i. 166). made a public offence, because crimen in
The single edict of a.d. 401 on ecclesiastical religione divina in omnium fertur injuriam,
matters, addressed to Pompeianus, proconsul but by c. 41 simple" confessio " or acknow-
of Africa, excepted bishops and clergy actively ledgment of error and return to orthodox
employed in sacred duties from the " auraria service sufficed for restoration to all rights, and
pensio," apparently (see Brissonus, Diet.) a Honorius shewed genuine anxiety to recall his
tax on commercial men. people to the right path on easy terms. XVI.
In 404 there were 14 decrees, chiefly on ii. 38 enacted clerical immunities for Africa.
religious matters. Of XVI. viii. 15, 16, 17, de In 408, XVI. viii. 18 stated that at the feast
Judaeis, 1 5 renews the general privileges of their of Purim ("Aman adrecordationem") the Jews
patriarchs 16 deprives or exempts Samaritans were accustomed to burn or insult the cross.
;

from military responsibilities; 17 withdraws This was to cease, their other ceremonies were
the prohibition of a.d. 400 as to collections " infra contemptum Christianae legis," and
in the synagogues. XVI. ii. (37 Aug.) re- might continue. There were 6 statutes on
leases from prison various clerical persons con- heretics and pagans — XVI. v. 42-45, with XVI.

cerned in popular tumults in Constantinople, X. 19, and V. xiv. 7 and XVI. ii. 36, de Epis-
but expels them, with all other foreign bishops copis. Enemies to the Catholic faith were for-
and clergy, from the city. XVI. iv. 4, 5 (De bidden to serve in the emperor's palace guard.
his qui super Religione contendunl) coerces "the All statutes against Donatists, Manicheans, and
orthodox, who now forsake the holy churches, Priscillianists were to be fully enforced, and
and assemble elsewhere (' alio convenire con- a new sect called Caelicolae were, with them,
antur'), and venture to dissent from the to be deprived of all buildings for public
religion of Acacius, Theophilus, and Porphy- assemblage. Donatists who had not yet con-
HONORIUS, PLAVIUS AUGUSTUS HONORIUS, PLAVIUS AUGUSTUS 493
fessed their heresy, but only withdrawn from (XVI. vi. 6, 7) the settlement effected by
Catholic service (" saevae religionis obtentu ") Marcellinus on Honorius's part at Carthage,
were included. Certain Jews and Donatists between the orthodox and the Donatists,
had insulted the Sacraments, and were to be which, Tillemont says, brought the heresy to
punished; illegal assemblage for heretical wor- an end. Against any public assemblage for
ship was again prohibited. XVI. ii. 39 provi- heretical purposes, v. 56. By v. 57 Montan-
ded that a degraded cleric who had renounced ist congregations were forbidden their clergy
;

clerical office should be at once made a curialis to be banished if they attempted to ordain
and forbidden to resume his orders. others. Harbourers to be deprived of the
A.D. 409. De Haereticis, XVI. v. 46, Jan., 47, house or property where the heretic remained.
June. Two edicts to enforce laws on Jews, Their places of meeting, if any were left
Gentiles, or pagans, and heretics. Tillemont standing, to be the property of the church.
says that the death of Stilicho caused a general By c. 58 houses of Eunomian clergy were
outbreak of heretics, the Donatists of Africa in confiscated to the fisc
; or any in which second
particular asserting that his laws against them baptism has been administered. Their clergy
were now abrogated. Two edicts in March were exiled, and they were again deprived of
and July forbad amusements (" voluptates ") testamentary and military rights. AH these,
on Sunday and exempted Jews from public except the last, were addressed to Africa. By
calls on their Sabbath {II. viii. 25, 26). III. xii. 4 marriage with a deceased wife's
In 410 there were 4 decrees (out of 19) on sister or husband's brother was forbidden.
heresy. The Montanists, Priscillianists, and XVI. x. 20. All pagan priests were required
others were forbidden military service, and to return to their native place. Confiscation
other means of exemption from curial burdens to the church or the emperor of lands and
(XVI. v. 48). To the intestacy of the Euno- grounds used for pagan purposes. To become
mians was added the reversion of bequests to a pagan was now a capital offence. In 416
the fisc, if no orthodox heir survive; c. 51 Gentiles, or persons guilty of participation in
altogether abrogated a former imperial ora- pagan rites, were excluded from the army and
culum or rescript, by which certain heretics from official or judicial positions. In 423
had been allowed to meet in secret. XVI. xi. 3 Honorius renewed all his edicts against heresy,
confirmed all existing religious statutes. with special mention of Manicheans, Phry-
A.D. 411, 412. XVI. v. 52, Jan. Heavy gians, Priscillianists, Arians, Macedonians,
fines, or total confiscation of proi>€rty, on Eunomians, Novatianists, and Sabbatiani.
obstinate Donatists. Pressure was to be XVI. V. 59, 60. He was able to say that he
exercised by masters on their slaves, and by believed there were very few pagans remain-
the local authorities on coloni. Heretical ing, and so far his persecution may seem to
clergy banished from Africa (c. 53). Jovinian have been successful, as with the Donatists
and others, his followers, to be corporally and others. Other and more powerful causes
punished and banished to island of Boas, were at work, and error and idolatry were
on coast of Dalmatia. XVI. ii. 40, 41, de taking other forms. The remarkable statute
Episcopis. Church properties exempted from (XVI. X. 22 and 23) ran thus :
" Paganos,
fugatio (a kind of land-tax by acreage, Bris- si qui supersunt, quanquam jam nuUos esse
son), also from repairs of public roads and credamus, promulgatorum legum jam dudum
bridges. By c. 41 clergy were to be tried only praescripta compescant." The next (c. 23)
before their bishops and unnecessary scandal stated that pagans caught in acts of idolatrous
avoided by only bringing accusations which ceremonial ought to be capitally punished,
could be definitely proved. For perfect toler- but are only subject to loss of property
ance towards the Jews, XVI. viii. 20, 21. and exile. He denounced the same sentence
In 418 Wallia and his Visigoths were settled in c. 24 on Manicheans and Pepuzitae, who
in the S.W. of France with Toulouse for their were worse than all other heretics, saying,
capital. Britain was entirely lost, and the " quod in venerabili die Paschatis ab omnibus
Armoricans were maintaining themselves in dissentiant." He ended with a strong
independence. A fresh revolt under another caution against any violence on Christian
Maximus seems not to have been suppressed pretences to pagans or Jews leading quiet and
till 422. Wallia, however, acted in Spain as a legal lives, with penalty of triple or fourfold
feudal ally of the empire, won a succession of restitution. Two more decrees this year
victories over the Alani, Vandals, and Suevi, restored all fabrics taken from the Jews, even
and restored great part of the peninsula to for church purposes ; or, in case the holy
Honorius, who is said by Prosper's Chronicle mysteries had been celebrated in such build-
to have entered Rome in triumph a second ings, equal accommodation should be provided
time. The Burgundians occupied the two for the former holders.
provinces which still bear their name, and the Honorius possessed no character except a
Franks were settled on the Rhine. All con- timid docility, but with some natural goodness
tinued to acknowledge the title of Honorius, of heart or gentleness, otherwise he could
and to hold titles from the empire ; and all not have continued to reign so disastrously
accepted the civil law and magistracy of Rome. for 28 years. It must be remembered, in
Honorius himself had confirmed the independ- excuse of his coercive action, that persecu-
ence of Britain and Armorica c. 410, and died tion was no invention of his or Theodosius's,
of dropsy in his 40th year (423), Aug. 27. but an inheritance of the empire. Such
His later legislation has little historical questions as the expediency or the possibility
interest, but the enactments on paganism and of perfect toleration, the limits of pressure or
heresy from 413 to 423 were as follows Two coercion, and what body in the state is to
:

against repetition of baptism, a.d. 413 ; two exercise it, have been debated in theory and
against Donatists, v. 54, 55. These comprise hewn out in practice, from the beginnings of
494 HONORIUS, FLAVIUS AUGUSTUS HORMISDAS
society, and are still unsettled. Nor can they Guizot, Civ. in Europe, lect. ii. p. 34, ed. Bohn.)
be solved, unless the relation of the individual He was consequently involved with the civil
conscience to the public, and of the individual power in coercive measures of all kinds and in
soul to the church, were accurately known and all directions.
defined. That there is a point at which the Lastly, the empire was divided between
church militant must cease to strive with Rome and Constantinople, but Italy between
invincible ignorance or determined error, Rome and Milan or Ravenna. Ambrose must
leaving them to the civil power, as civil have felt that the remaining paganism of Rome
dangers or nuisances only, seems a rule which was his chief difficulty, and his influence must
the sad experience of 1800 years has but have been accordingly exerted on Honorius in
imperfectly taught the Christian world. Only his first days. Hence, perhaps, his supine-
the great spirit of Athanasius seems to have ness and indifference to the fate of Rome, and
anticipated it in his day, though he did not perhaps, in a great degree, the paralysis of
always act on it. The world knew no toler- Italian defence as soon as the barbaric genius
ance, and never had known it in Honorius's of Stilicho was withdrawn.
time ; and his position as emperor com- A coin of Honorius is figured in Smith's
pelled him to do as other emperors had done Diet, of G. and R. Biogr. s.v. The counten-
before him. The temptation to a Christian ance has an inexpressiveness which may have
emperor to hold heresy or paganism an belonged to him in a special degree, but
offence against the State, which he personified extends to most portraiture after the 3rd
(at least on earth, and in heathen theory in cent. Another represents the emperor in the
heaven), was too much for man. Without paludamentum, bearing a globe and the
asserting that all the faults of the Christian labarum. On another, with Vota Publica, are^
church may be traced to the fatal gift of two emperors with nimbi, which is important
Constantine, we cannot doubt that her evidence of the derivation of that symbol from
alliance with the temporal power proved as imperial effigies (see Tyrwhitt, Art Teaching of
dangerous as her investiture with temporal Prim. Ch., Index" Nimbus "). [r.st.j.t.]
rule was fabulous. Pagan emperors had Hormisdas (3), bp. of Rome after Symma-
claimed to rule as personal and present chus from July 26, 514, to Aug. 6, 523, Anasta-
divinity, and this claim had always specially sius and Justin being successively emperors of
embittered their persecution of the Christian the East and Theodoric ruling the West as
faith. It was never, in fact, withdrawn ; the king of Italy. Hormisdas was a native of
ruler of Rome was invested with an awe Frusino in Campania. Pope Silverius (ace.
beyond man, and that, in fact, descended to 536) is said to have been his son (Liberat.
the mediaeval popedom. Constantine him- Breviar. 22). The memorable event of his
self had allowed his statues to be worshipped pontificate was the restoration of communion
with incense and lights, and so most unhappily between Rome and Constantinople, which had
encouraged the earlier iconodulism of half- been interrupted since 484, in connexion with
Christianized Greeks. But the connexion he the Eutychian heresy. [Felix III. Aca- ;

instituted between the temporal and spiritual cius.] The first overtures were made in 515
power tempted a Christian despot like Theo- by the emperor Anastasius, being moved
dosius, under guidance of a great representa- thereto by Vitalian, a Scythian, the command-
tive of the church, to think that God was er of the imperial cavalry, who, having taken up
surely with them in whatever persecuting the cause of orthodoxy, made himself master of
edict they set forth ; and thus Justinian's Thrace, Scythia, and Mysia, and marched with
words, " Sacrilegii instar est dubitare " {Cod. an army of Huns and Bulgarians to the gates
IX. xxix. 3), were literally meant, and logic- of Constantinople. Anastasius had to pro-
ally, if not conscientiously, believed. The cure peace by assenting to 3 conditions, one
empire could not forget its traditions. Ex- being that he should summon a council at
cuses which are admitted by Christians for Heraclea, the pope being invited and free
Aurelius or Diocletian ought to be considered discussion allowed (Theophan. Chron. ad an.
in behalf of Theodosius and his sons. The Imp. Anast. 23). In 515 the emperor wrote
fierceness and necessities of their age must be to Hormisdas, desiring his concurrence in
allowed as palliations. restoring unity to the church by means of
Theodosius's 15 edicts in 15 years, from such acouncil; and Hormisdas, after a guarded
380-384, extend over the ministers, assem- reply, sent legates to Constantinople with
blies and persons of heretics, and make not letters to the emperor and Vitalian, and a
only the Manichean heresy punishable by statement of the necessary conditions for
death, but the Quartodeciman error as to union. These were (i) The emperor should
:

keeping Easter. Ambrose, like other Church- issue to all bishops of his dominion a written
men, could not abstain from the use of the declaration accepting the council of Chalcedon
mighty arm of flesh at his command, and the and the letters of pope Leo. (2) A like de-
institution of inquisitors must certainly have claration should be publicly signed by the
been an ecclesiastical measure. It should be Eastern bishops, who should also anathema-
remembered that the Christian faith had by its tize Nestorius, Eutyches, Dioscorus, Aelurus,
own influences so elevated and organized the Peter Mongus, Peter the Fuller, and Acacius,
influence of the human conscience as to have with all their followers. (3) Persons exiled
become a temporal power by the nature of for religion should be recalled and their
things. The Christian spiritual power ruled judgment of the apos-
cases reserved for the
men's persons and fortunes the bishop was in
; tolic see. (4) Such had been in
exiles as
fact obeyed by his large share of the popula- communion with Rome and professed the
tion, and became a temporal magistrate be- catholicfaith should first be recalled. (5)
cause men made him arbitrate for them. (See Bishops accused of having persecuted the
HORMISDAS HORMISDAS 495

orthodox should be sent to Rome to be judged. the faith of Chalcedon, and to patience under
Thus the emperor proposed a free discussion present straits (in Act. V. Concil. Constantin.
in council; the pope required the unqualified Labbe, vol. v. p. 11 11).
acceptance of orthodoxy, and submission to The death of Anastasius (July 9, 518) and
himself as head of Christendom, before he the accession of the orthodox Justin changed
would treat at all. He did not reject the the aspect of affairs. During divine service at
idea of a council, but, from his point of view, Constantinople, while John the Cappadocian
none was wanted. The Easterns had but to (who had lately succeeded Timotheus as
renounce their errors and accept the terms of patriarch) was officiating, the populace, who
reconciliation dictated by the apostolic see, had been all along on the orthodox side, seem
and peace would be at once restored. to have made a riot in the church in the
This attempt failed, as Anastasius, though impatience of their orthodox zeal, crying,
now professing orthodoxy, demurred to eras- " Long emperor " " Long live the
live the !

ing the name of Acacius from the diptychs. patriarch "


They would not brook delay.
!

But he continued his overtures. In 516 he By continued cries, by closing the doors of
sent two distinguished' laymen to Rome with the church and saying they would not leave
a letter to Hormisdas. But Hormisdas con- it till he had done what they wanted, they
tinued resolute, and the emperor dismissed the compelled him to proclaim the acceptance of
bishops already assembled at Heraclea for the the four general councils, including Chalcedon.
intended council. In a letter to Avitus of A synod, attended by some 40 bishops, ratified
Vienne (517) the pope, referring to this what the patriarch had done. Letters were
embassy, complains of the fruitless and per- sent to various Eastern metropolitans, in-
fidious promises of the Greeks, but rejoices at cluding those of Jerusalem, Tyre, and Syria
the faithfulness of the churches of Gaul, Secunda, who forthwith reported to the synod
Thrace, Dardania, and lUyricum, which had the full acceptance of orthodoxy by their
stood firm against persecution in the com- several churches (j6. p. 1 131, etc.). Coercive
munion of Rome. It appears that 40 bishops measures were used by Justin. In two edicts
of lUyricum and Greece had renounced he ordered the restoration of the orthodox
obedience to their metropolitan of Thessa- exiled by Anastasius, the acknowledgment of
lonica and sent to Hormisdas to seek com- the council of Chalcedon in the diptychs of all
munion with Rome (Theophan. Chron.). churches, and declared heretics incapable of
Hormisdas, building on the emperor's public offices, civil or military.
political necessities, sent in 517 a second The pope insisted upon the erasure of the
embassy to the East with increased demands. name of Acacius and the subscription of the
They were charged with a rule of faith (regula rule of faith rejected by Anastasius as the first
fidei) for the signature of all who desired steps to restoration of communion. In 519
reconciliation with Rome which was more Hormisdas sent a legation to Constantino-
exacting than any previous document. The ple, charged with letters to the emperor and
signers were to declare that, mindful of the patriarch, and also to the empress Euphemia
text "Thou art Peter," etc., the truth of which and other persons of distinction, including
has been proved by the immaculate religion three influential ladies, Anastasia, Palmatia,
ever maintained by the apostolic see, they and Anicia. They carried with them the
profess in all things to follow that see, and to lihellus described above, to be signed by all
desire communion with it. Accordingly they who desired reconciliation.
were to accept the decrees of Chalcedon and At Constantinople they were met by
the " tome " of pope Leo, and also all letters on Vitalian, Justinian, and other senators, and
religion he had ever written ; and not only to received by the emperor in the presence of the
anathematize Nestorius, Eutyches, Dioscorus, senate and a deputation of four bishops to
Timothy Aelurus, Peter Fullo, and Acacius, represent the patriarch. The libellus was
with all their followers, but also exclude from read ; the bishops had nothing to say against
their diptychs all who had been " sequestrated it, and the emperor and senators recommended
from catholic communion," which is explained them to accept it. The patriarch proved
to mean communion with the apostolic see. unwilling to sign it as it stood but at length,
;

Such demands ended the negotiations, and after much contention, it was agreed that he
Anastasius peremptorily dismissed the legates, might embody the libellus unaltered in a
and sent a reply to Hormisdas (July 11, 517) letter, with his own preamble. This was
which ended: "We can bear to be injured done, the names of Acacius and his successors
and set at naught we will not be commanded "
; in the see, Fravitas, Euphemius, Macedonius,
(Hormisd. Epp. post. Ep. xxii. Labbe). and Timotheus, and of the emperors Zeno and
Persecutions were now renewed in the East. Anastasius, were erased from the diptychs ;

The monasteries of the orthodox in Syria the bishops of other cities, and the archi-
Secunda were burnt and 350 monks mas- mandrites who had been previously reluctant,
sacred. The survivors sent a deputation to now came to terms and the legates wrote to
;

the pope, acknowledging in ample terms the the pope expressing thankfulness that so
supremacy of " the most holy and blessed complete a triumph had been won without
patriarch of the whole world," " the successor sedition, tumult, or shedding of blood. The
of the Prince of the Apostles," and " the Head patriarch's preamble was a protest against the
of all." They implore him to exercise his claim of Rome to dictate terms of communion
power of binding and loosing in defence of the to Constantinople and an assertion of the
true faith, and to anathematize all heretics, co-ordinate authority of his own see. He
including Acacius iib.). To this appeal Hor- says, " Know therefore, most holy one, that,
misdas replied in a letter to all the orthodox in according to what I have written, agreeing in
the East, exhorting them to steadfastness in the truth with thee, I too, loving peace,
496 HORMISDAS RORMISDAS
renounce allthe heretics repudiated by thee : was God. But He Who was brought forth was
for I hold the most holy churches of the elder the same with Him Who suffered on the Cross.
and of the new Rome to be one I define that
;
On the other hand " God was crucified " had
see of the apostle Peter and this of the imperial been a favourite Monophysite formula, used
city to be one see." The same view of the to emphasize their doctrine of the absorption
unity of the two sees is expressed in his letter of the human nature into the divine and ;

to Hormisdas. Even Justin, in his letter to great offence had formerly been given to the
the pope, guards against implying that the orthodox by the addition of " Who wast
authority of Constantinople was inferior to crucified for us " to the Trisagion by Peter
that of Rome, saying that " John, the prelate FuUo. The adoption of this addition at
of our new Rome, with his clergy, agrees with Constantinople under Anastasius had caused
you," and that " all concur in complying with a popular tumult, and it was probably its
what is your wish, as well as that of the Con- abrogation during the reaction under Justin
stantinopolitan see." Peace being thus that caused certain Scythian monks to defend
concluded at Constantinople, a deputation the formula, and to maintain that " one of
was sent to Thessalonica, headed by bp. John, the holy and undivided Trinity" suffered.
the papal legate, to receive the submission of The question was laid before the legates of
that church. Dorotheus, bp. of Thessalonica, Hormisdas, when in Constantinople, a.d. 519.
tore the Hbellus in two before the people, and They decided against the Scythian monks,
declared that never would he sign it or assent arguing that the faith had been fully and
to such as did. Hormisdas, on hearing of this, sufficiently defined at Chalcedon and in the
wrote to the emperor, requiring that Doro- letter of pope Leo, and that the formula of the
theus should be deposed. But Dorotheus monks was an unauthorized novelty, likely to
was summoned to Constantinople to be tried, lead to serious heresy. The monks contended
sent thence to Heraclea while his cause was that its adoption was necessary for rendering
being heard, and eventually allowed to return the definitions of Chalcedon distinct against
to his see. He and his church were now re- Nestorianism. Vitalian seems to have sup-
stored to Catholic communion, and he wrote a ported them. Justin and Justinian begged
respectful letter to the pope (a.d. 520) express- the pope to settle the question. He wrote to
ing great regard for him personally and for the desire that the monks should be kept at Con-
apostolic see. Hormisdas replied that he was stantinople ; but they managed to get to
anxious to believe in his innocence, and in his Rome to lay their case before him (Ep. Ixxix.
being the author of the peace now concluded, Labbe). At length they left Rome, having
but expressed dissatisfaction that he " de- publicly proclaimed their views there. Hor-
layed even to follow those whom he ought to misdas does not seem to have actually con-
have led," and hoped he would "repel from demned the expression of the monks, though
himself the odium of so great a crime, and in annoyed by their propounding it, but spoke
reconciliation to the faith would at length strongly against it as an unnecessary novelty.
follow the example of those who had returned." In the end, however, their view triumphed.
It thus seems clear that Dorotheus, though For in 533 the emperor Justinian issued an
professing orthodoxy and restored by the em- edict asserting that " the sufferings and
peror to his see, had not so far fully complied, miracles are of one and the same for we do —
if he ever did, with the pope's terms {Inter not acknowledge God the Word to be one and
Epp. Hormisd. Ixii. Ixiii. Ixxii. Ixxiii.). Christ another, but one and the same for the :

Notwithstanding the general triumph of Trinity remained even after the Incarnation
orthodoxy throughout the East, except at of the One Word of God, Who was of the
Alexandria, the unbending pertinacity of Trinity ; for the Holy Trinity does not admit
Hormisdas still caused difficulties. In 520 of the addition of a fourth person. We
the emperor Justinian and Epiphanius (who anathematize Nestorius the man-worshipper,
had succeeded John as patriarch) wrote urgent and those who think with him, who deny that
letters to him on the subject. They alleged our Lord Jesus Christ, the Son of God and our
that, though the condition was complied with God, Incarnate, made man, and crucified, was
in the imperial city, yet no small part of the One of the holy consubstantial Trinity " (Lex
Orientals, especially in the provinces of Justinian, a.d. 533, Cod. I. i. 6 Joann. Pap.
;

Pontus, Asia, and Oriens, would not be com- ii. Epp. in Patr. Lat. Ixvi. 18 b), and it has
pelled by sword, fire, or torments to comply, since been accounted orthodox to affirm that
and they implored the pope not to be more God suffered in the flesh, though in His
exacting than his predecessors. The pope assumed human, not in His original divine,
persisted in his demand, and urged Justin, as nature. (See Pearson On the Creed, art. iv.}.
a duty, not to shrink from coercion. He Hormisdas died early in Aug. 523, having
authorized Epiphanius to deal at his dis- held the see 9 years and 11 days. He, as well
cretion with various cases (ih. Ixxii. Concil. as all the popes during the schism with the
Constant, act. V. Labbe, vol. v. p. 11 19). East, except the too conciliatory Anastasius,
A nice question, arising out of the now has had his firmness acknowledged by canon-
defined orthodox doctrine of One Person and ization, his day in the Roman Calendar being
Two Natures in Christ, came before Hormisdas Aug. 6. His extant writings consist of letters,
for settlement. There being but one Person- 80 being attributed to him, one of which, to
ality in the Incarnate Word, and that Divine, St. Remigius (in which he gives him vicariate
it seemed correct to say that this Divine jurisdiction over the kingdom of Clovis which
Person suffered ; and yet to say this seemed he had converted), is probably spurious, as it
to attribute passibility to the Godhead. It implies that Clovis was still reigning, though
was undoubted Nestorian heresy to deny that he had died in 5 1 1, more than two years before
He Whom the Blessed Virgin brought forth the election of Hormisdas. Most of the
HOSIUS HOSIUS 497
remaining 70 letters refer to the affairs of the the empire took place by the appointment of
East, several to the metropolitan see of Nico- two Caesars, Constantius Chlorus (the father
polis in Epirus (Hormisd. vi.-ix., xvii.-xxii.). of Constantine) and Galerius Maximianus.
Three letters of Hormisdas (xxiv.-xxvi.), to When Constantius was made Caesar in 292,
John, hp. of Tarragona, Sallustius, bp. of Maximian's half of the empire was subdivided.
Seville, and the bishops of Spain in general, " Cuncta quae trans Alpes Galliae sunt Con-
give the two prelates vicariate jurisdiction stantio commissa Africa Italiaque Herculio "
;

over E. and W. Spain, exhort against simony (Aur. Vict, de Caesar, xxxix. 30). On the
and other irregularities, and direct the regular abdication of Diocletian and Maximian in 305,
convention of sj'nods. Cf. Thiel, Epp. Pontiff. Gaul, with Italy and Africa, was given to Con-
Rom. i. stantius, and the rest of the empire to Galerius.
Hormisdas had great administrative and But Constantius, content with the dignity of
diplomatic abilities, was singularly uncom- Augustus, refused to administer Italy and
promising and firm of purpose, and one of the Africa (Eutropius, X. i). Orosius similarly says
most strenuous and successful assertors of the that Constantius, " Italiam, Africam, Hispani-
supremacy of the Roman see. —
[j.b v.] am et Gallias obtinuit. Sed, vir tranquillissi-
Hosius (1), (Osius), a confessor under Maxi- mus, Gallia tantum Hispaniaque contentus,
mian, and bp. of Corduba, the capital of the Galerio caeteris patribus cessit" (Hist. vii. 25).
province of Baetica in Spain. He took a Constantius, says Sozomen (H. E. i. 6), was
leading part on the catholic side in the con- not willing that Christianity should be ac-
troversies of the first half of the 4th cent. For counted unlawful in the countries beyond the
nearly 50 years he was the foremost bishop of confines of Italy, i.e. in Gaul, Britain, or the
his time, held in universal esteem and enjoy- region of the Pyrenaean mountains as far as
ing unbounded influence. Eusebius says, " He the western ocean. These facts shew that in
was approved for the sobriety and genuineness the division of the empire Spain was always
of his faith, had distinguished himself by the an appendage of Gaul, and under the same
boldness of his religious profession, and his administration. If so, it was under the
fame was widely spread" [Vit. Cotts. bk. ii. jurisdiction of Constantius, and, as both
cc. 63, 73). Socrates calls him " the cele- Lactantius and Eusebius affirm, that Constan-
brated Hosius" (H. E. ii. 29). Sozomensays: tius took no part in the persecution of the
"He was honoured for his faith, virtuous life, Christians, it could not have been in his
and steadfast confession of truth " [H. E. i. period that Hosius became a confessor.
16). Athanasius is never weary of repeating When, then, did he suffer ? We have his own
his praises. " Of the great Hosius," he says, testimony that he had been a confessor in the
" who answers to his name, that confessor of time of Maximian. Probably it was in some
a happy old age, it is superfluous for me to special and local persecution carried out under
speak, for he is not an obscure person, but of the orders of Maximianus Herculius while he
all men the most illustrious " (Apol. de Fugd, was sole ruler of the West, before Constantius
§ 7). Considering his great renown and his was appointed Caesar in 292, and much be-
prominent part in affairs, it is remarkable how fore the general persecution authorized by
very little is known of his personal history. the edicts of Diocletian in 303. It is very
There seems no reason to doubt Eusebius, Ath- probable that between 286 and 292, while
anasius, and others, who make him a native Maximian was sole ruler of the West, there
of Spain. Athanasius says (Hist. Arian. § 45) were many martyrdoms in Spain as well as
that when Hosius was more than 100 years in Gaul and Italy. Hosius would have been
old, and had been more than 60 years a bishop, then between 30 and 36 years old, and it is
he was summoned by Constantius from Spain far more likely that he suffered persecution
to Sirmium, and there subscribed an Arian and witnessed a good confession then than
formula about the middle of a.d. 357. Soon later under the mild rule of Constantius.
afterwards he returned to his native country Beyond Hosius's own statement, we have no
and died. We may probably, therefore, place contemporary evidence upon the subject.
his birth c. 256, asTillemont does (Mem. t. vii. As the bishops and olficers of the church
p. 302, 4to ed.). generally suffered first in the outbreaks of
The common view that he suffered for the persecution, it is more than probable that
Christian faith in Diocletian's persecution Hosius was already bp. of Corduba when he
between 303 and 305 is more than doubtful. became a confessor. His earliest public act
We have his own testimony in his letter to with which we are acquainted was his presence
Constantius (the son of Constantine) preserved as bp. of Corduba at the synod of Elvira, but
by Athanasius (Hist. Arian. § 44). " I was a the date of this synod, like that of other events
confessor at the first, when a persecution arose in his history, is involved in much obscurity.
in the time of your grandfather Maximian." Mendoza, who has written more fully upon it
These words can hardly refer to the general than any other author, is of opinion that it
persecution enjoined by Diocletian. The should be placed in 300 or 301. Nineteen
allusion seems to be to the persecution of bishops from different parts of Spain were
which the chief promoter was Maximian, the present, hence it may be regarded as represent-
Augustus and colleague, not the son-in-law, of ing the whole church of Spain. The president
Diocletian. Maximianus Herculius was made was Fehx of Acci (Guadix) in Baetica, pro-
Caesar in 285, and Augustus in 286, as is shewn bably the oldest bishop present. The name
by coins and inscriptions (cf. Clinton, Fasti of Hosius comes next. As a rule the order of
Romani, vol. i. p. 328), and for six years the signatures to the Acts of councils indicates the
Roman empire was divided between these two order of precedence among the bishops, either
rulers, Diocletian having the East and Maxi- according to the date of their consecration or
mian the West. In 292 a further partition of the importance of their episcopal sees (Hefele,
32
498 fiosius HOSlUS
Hist, of Councils, vol. 64,i. Eng. trans.)- As
Hosius at the imperial court in 316, when the
Hosius was probably not over 45 years old, Donatists, having been condemned at the
his high position could not have been due to council in Nov. at Milan by the emperor him-
his age, but must have been in right of his see. self, spread abroad a report, as we learn from
We infer, therefore, that Corduba then held Augustine {cont. Ep. Parmen. lib. i. c. 8, vol.
the first place among the cities of
Spain. ix. p. 43, ed. Migne), that by the advice of
It is now very difficult to form
a true con- Hosius, a friend of Caecilian, the catholic bp.
ception of Corduba in its ancient grandeur. of Carthage, they had been condemned.
Tn the ist and the beginning of the 2nd cents. In the relations between Christianity and
Spain reached a very high development in paganism there is ground for thinking that the
the social system of Rome. Roman influence position of Hosius at this time must have been
had so spread in Baetica that the natives had somewhat of a representative one on the
forgotten their own language. Roman schools Christian side otherwise it is difficult to
;

were opened in the coloniae and municipia, the understand why the emperor should have
most brilliant being at Corduba and Osca. addressed to him a law declaring free such
For nearly two centuries Spain produced men slaves as were emancipated in the presence of
remarkable in all kinds of culture. Lucan and the bishops or clergy (a.d. 321 Cod. Theod.
;

the two Senecas were born at Corduba, its lib. iv. tit. 7, col. 379, Hand's ed.). By the
schools thus furnishing rivals even to Vergil endof 323 Constantine had becomesole master
and Cicero. In the time of Hosius this of the Roman empire in the East and West,
intellectual activity had considerably declined, and took measures for the re-establishment
and pre-eminence in literary culture had of religious concord throughout his dominions.
passed to the province of Africa. But Cor- To this end, says Socrates (H. E. i. 7), " he'
duba must still have retained a high place in sent a letter to Alexander, bp. of Alexandria,
the social development of the time. A man and to Arius, by a trustworthy person named
called to such an important see would most Hosius, who was bp. of Corduba in Spain, whom
probably be one of some personal distinction. the emperor greatly loved and held in the
Baronius(ad ann. 57) attaches little importance highest estimation," urging them not to con-
to this synod, which he suspects of Novatianist tend about matters of small importance (Eus.
tendencies. The very first canon, indeed, Vit. Const, ii. 63). That Hosius, a bishop of
decrees that adults who have sacrificed to idols the Western church, and speaking only Latin,
have committed a capital crime and can never should be sent to a city in the East in which
again be received into communion. Such a Greek civilization had reached its highest
denial of pardon to those who lapsed under development is a striking proof of the high
persecution was the chief error of Novatian opinion that the emperorhad of him. Moreover,
(Socr. H. E. iv. 28). The Novatianist dis- his mission gave him precedence as an imperial
cipline was very rigid in other respects also, commissioner over the bp. of Alexandria, whose
especially with reference to carnal sins, and see ranked next to that of Rome. It is not
many of the canons of Elvira relate to such very clear what Hosius did at Alexandria, the
offences, and their stern and austere spirit accounts being very imperfect and confused.
shews how deeply the Fathers at Elvira were He apparently dev^ited himself with great
influencedby Novatianist principles. Though earnestness to refuting the dogmas of Sabellius
we cannot trace the hand of Hosius in the (Socr. H. E. iii. 7), but as to his steps with
composition of these canons, yet as he was a reference to Arius, history is silent. We know,
leading member of the synod, its decrees would however, that he failed to extinguish the flame
doubtless be in harmony with his convictions. which the Arians had lighted. Finding it im-
For 12 or 13 years after this synod nothing possible to terminate these controversies, he
is known of his life. He then seems to have had to return to Constantine and acknowledge
been brought into close personal relations that his mission had failed. The emperor there-
with the emperor Constantine, and thence- upon, probably by his advice (Sulpit. Sever.
forward his acts form part of the history oi his Hist. ii. 55, " Nicaena synodus auctore illo
time. It would be interesting to know how [Hosio] confecta habebatur"), resolved to
Hosius acquired the great influence over Con- convoke an oecumenical council and to invite
stantine which it is believed he exercised up bishops from all quarters. The council was
to the time of the Nicene council. But there held at Nicaea in 325. The part of Hosius in it
is not a single passage in any ancient writer hasbeen much discussed, (i) Washe thepresi-
which relates the origin of their connexion. dent of the council, and if so (2) did he preside
The absence of Hosius from the synod of as legate of the pope ? There is no doubt of
Aries, Aug. i, 314, the most numerously at- his veryprominent position. Unfortunately
tended council that had hitherto been held in no complete account of the acts of the synod
Christendom, is remarkable. Bishops from is extant, if such ever existed.
Italy, Gaul, Spain, and Britain were assembled (i) Roman
Catholic writers, such as Baro-
as representatives of the whole Western nius, Nat. Alexander
(vol. vii. p. 390), Fleury,
church. Constantine was absent, being en- Alzog, and Hefele (Cone. i. 39), maintain that
gaged in his first war with Licinius in Panno- he was president, but as the legate of the pope.
nia. Possibly Hosius may have been in They refer to Gelasius (lib. i. c. 5), who sa)'S,
attendance upon the emperor, as we learn " Osius ex Hispanis, Silvestri Episcopi
. . .

from Eusebius (Vit. Const, ii. 4) that in maximae Romae locum obtinebat " — e'Trexw
this campaign Constantine took with him Ktti t6v rbwov, Mansi,
806 D. There is a
ii.
" the priests of God," for the benefit of their little ambiguity in these words. A man may
prayers and " to have them constantly about occupy a place which rightly belongs to an-
his person, as most trusty guardians of the other, but it does not follow that he is his re-
soul." Traces exist of the presence of presentative because he sits in his seat. At this
HOSIUS HOSIUS 499

epoch, although the bp. of Rome held the first nearly 20 years he lived in retirement in his
place among all his brethren, partly because own diocese. No trace of a return to the
Rome was the principal city in the world, yet court of Constantine remains, and it does not
his ecclesiastical jurisdiction does not appear appear that they ever met again. We must
to have extended beyond the churches of the look to the history of the time for some ex-
ten provinces of Italy, called in the versio planation of the cause for these altered rela-
prisca of the 6th Nicene canon " suburbicaria tions. Constantine left Asia Minor for Rome,
loca." The churches of the East were mainly which he reached c. July 326. His brief
under the jurisdiction of the metropolitans of stay there was marked by deeds of cruelty.
Alexandria or Antioch, and these great bishops In the midst of the Vicennalia the people of
would not brook the interference of their Rome heard with regret that his son Crispus
Western brethren. Moreover, the great had been put to death. Not long afterwards
strength of Christianity lay then in the East. the young Licinianus, his nephew, a boy of 12,
The West was still imperfectly Christianized. was killed, at the suggestion, it is said, of
It is difficult, therefore, to believe that Hosius the empress Fausta, whom retribution soon

presided at the council of Nicaea an Eastern overtook. There followed a great number of

synod as legate of the pope. public executions. The true causes of these
(2) But when we inquire why the usual order events are involved in mystery, but Constan-
of precedence was departed from, we are a tine is said to have become a prey to remorse.
little at a loss for a satisfactory answer. Du A great change certainly took place in his
Pin (Nouv. Bib. t. ii. pt. 2, p. 315) thought that character after he became sole master of the
Hosius presided because already acquainted Roman empire. He was spoiled by prosperity
with the question at issue and highly esteemed (Eutropius, lib. x. cc. 4, 6). He became
by the emperor. Similarly Schrockh {Kir- arrogant and impatient of counsel, distrustful
chengeschichie, Thl. v. § 336). This seems the and suspicious. This moral deterioration was
most probable explanation. It would be accompanied with great vacillation in his re-
difficult to understand how the bishop of a see ligious opinions. A few years after the council
in Spain took precedence over the great patri- of Nicaea he fell under Arian influences.
archs of the East if he had not been appointed Arius was recalled ; and at the instigation of
by the emperor. Hosius was at the height of Eusebius of Nicomedia and his adherents,
his reputation and enjoying the fullest con- Athanasius was condemned upon a false charge
fidence of his imperial master. He was, says and banished to Gaul (a.d. 335). Not long
Dean Stanley {Eastern Church, lect. iii.), " as before his death, in 337, Constantine received
the world-renowned Spaniard, an object of baptism from Eusebius of Nicomedia, an Arian
deeper interest to Christendom than any bp. bishop. This change in the characterand opin-
of Rome could at that time have been." The ions of Constantine was the true cause of his
power of the popes of Rome was not yet altered relations with Hosius. As the influence
sufficiently consolidated for their claim to of the Arians over his mind increased, that of
preside to have been admitted. Eleven years his old counsellor would of necessity decline.
before, at the great council of the West at Hosius does not appear to have been present
Aries in 314, the emperor appointed Marinus, at any of the synods between those of Nicaea
bp. of Aries, to preside, while pope Silvester and Sardica, nor to have taken any public part
was represented there, as at Nicaea, by two in the controversies between Athanasius and
presbyters and two deacons (cf. Hefele, Cone. the Arians during 20 years. In 345 the
i. 181). The council of Nicaea was convoked emperor Constans summoned Athanasius to
by Constantine, and there is good reason to Milan from Rome, and informed him that he
believe that Hosius held the foremost place by had been urged by certain bishops (believed
his appointment. He is believed to have been to have been pope Julius, Hosius, and Maxi-
the emperor's adviser in ecclesiastical matters. minus of Treves cf. Hilar. Frag. 2, p. 16) to
;

The part that Constantine, then only a cate- use his influence with his brother Constantius,
chumen, took in the proceedings at Nicaea that a council might be called to settle the
shews that he must have received some instruc- questions concerning him, the place of meeting
tion as to the debated questions from an to be Sardica. Athanasius while in Milan
orthodox teacher. It is very unlikely that was directed by Constans to go to Gaul to meet
he could have of himself given such a philo- Hosius and travel with him to Sardica (Athan.
sophical explanation of the Homoousion as he Apol. ad Const, c. 4). Hosius was now
did (see the letter addressed by Eusebius to nearly 90 years old. So long a journey imphes
the Christians at Caesarea and preserved by considerable vigour of body, and that age had
Socrates, H. E. i. 8). Again, the emperor's not changed his convictions nor impaired his
letter to the churches respecting the council zeal. Nor had his long retirement lessened
(Eus. Vit. Const, in. 17-20) bears unmistakable his influence or the unbounded respect felt for
traces of the hand of a theologian. Dean Mil- him by his contemporaries. In the encyclical
man {Hist, of Christianity, vol. ii. p. 364, crown letter of the council of Sardica to be found
8vo ed.) calls the letter of Constantine to Arius in Athanasius {Apol. contr. Arian. c. 44),
and Alexander "in its spirit a model of temper Hosius is spoken of as " one who on account
and conciliation. It is probable that the hand of his age, his confession, and the many labours
of Hosius is to be traced in its composition. he had undergone, is worthy of all reverence."
His influence was uniformly exercised in this His presidency in this case is affirmed in
manner. Wherever the edicts of the govern- express terms by Athanasius {Hist. Arian. c.
ment were mild, conciliating, and humane, 16) :
" The great Hosius was president of the
we find the bp. of Corduba." council." The Acts shew him as the life and
At the conclusion of the council Hosius soul of the synod, proposing most of the
seems to have returned to Corduba. For canons and taking the foremost part in the pro-
;

600 HOSIUS HOSIUS


ceedings. The synod afforded a great oppor- place with alarm. But these strong measures
tunity for his wisdom and conciliatory spirit. are as nothing, nor is our success at all more
He specially sought to conciliate the Eusebian secure so long as Hosius remains. Begin then
party, of which he writes to Constantine (ib. to persecute him also, and spare him not,
c. 44): "On my own account I challenged ancient as he is. Our heresy knows not to
the enemies of Athanasius, when they came to honour the hoary hairs of the aged " (Athan.
the church where I generally was, to declare Hist. Arian. § 42). At their solicitation the
what they had against him. This I did once emperor had previously summoned Hosius to
and again, requesting them if they were un- Milan, c. a.d. 355. On his arrival he urged
willing to appear before the whole council, yet him to subscribe against Athanasius and hold
to appear before me alone." The Eusebians, communion with the Arians. The old man, full
however, rejecting all overtures, held a synod of grief that such a proposal should have been
of their own at Philippopolis, whence they sent even made to him, would not for one moment
an encyclical letter to the churches, condemn- listen to it. Severely rebuking the emperor
ing Hosius, Julius, bp. of Rome, and others, and endeavouring to convince him of his error,
chiefly for holding communion with Athan- he withdrew from the court and returned to
asius. Hosius, they said, had also always been his own country. Constantius wrote fre-
a persecutor of a certain Marcus of blessed quently, sometimes flattering, sometimes
memory, a strenuous defender of evil men, threatening him. " Be persuaded," he said.
and a companion of wicked and abandoned " and subscribe against Athanasius, for who-
persons in the East (Hilar. Frag. iii. t. ii. ever subscribes against him thereby embraces
col. 674, ed. Migne). with us the Arian cause." Hosius remained -

Until 354 we hear nothing further of him. fearless and unmoved, and wrote a spirited
An extant letter written to him by pope Li- answer to Constantius, preserved by Athan-
berius, early in 354, shews the great respect in asius, the only extant composition by Hosius
which he was held. Liberius writes, full of (ib. § 44). The emperor continued to
grief, because Vincentius of Capua, one of his threaten him severely, intending either to
legates in whom he had placed great confidence, bring him over by force or to banish him,
at a synod consisting chiefly of the Eusebian for, says Socrates (H. E. ii. 31) the Arians
party, held at Aries in 353, had consented considered that this would give great authority
under constraint to give up communion with to their opinions. Finding that Hosius would
Athanasius (j7). vi. t. ii. col. 688). not subscribe, Constantius sent for him to Sir-
During his long life Hosius had preserved mium and detained him there a whole year.
an unblemished name and been a consistent " Unmindful," says Athanasius (I.e.), " of his
and uncompromising supporter of the Nicene father's love for Hosius, without reverence for
faith. At length, when 100 years old, he gave his great age, for he was then 100 years old,
way for a brief moment to the violence of his this patron of impiety and emperor of heresy
persecutors, and consented under torture to used such violence towards the old man that
hold communion with Valens and Ursacius at last, broken down by suffering, he was
(Athan. Hist. Arian. 45), a concession which brought, though with reluctance, to hold
has been much magnified and misrepresented. communion with Valens and Ursacius, but
In 355 a synod was convoked by Constan- he would not subscribe against Athanasius "
tius at Milan, which deserved, says Tillemont (a.d. 357). He says elsewhere (Apol. pro Fug.
(Mem. t. vi. p. 362), the name of a robber § 7) that Hosius " yielded for a time to the
synod even more than did the false council of Arians, as being old and infirm in body, and
Ephesus. At this synod the Eusebians first after repeated blowshad been inflicted upon him
openly declared in favour of the dogmas of above measure, and conspiracies formed against
Arius, and endeavoured to secure their accept- his kinsfolk." Socrates gives similar testi-
ance by the church. The emperor called upon mony (I.e. ; cf. Newman, Arians, c. iv. § 3).
the orthodox bishops, under penalty of It is difficult to determine which of the
banishment, to join in the condemnation of confessions of faith drawn up at Sirmium was
Athanasius. Most of them gave way, and actually signed by Hosius. Whether there
consented to condemn Athanasius and to hold was only one synod of Sirmium, or two or three
communion with the Arians (Rufinus, lib. i. at intervals oif a few years, is also a question
c. 20). The few who stood firm were upon which opinions have differed widely. The
banished, bound with chains, to distant pro- predominant opinion is expressed by Valesius
vinces : Dionysius, exarch of Milan, to Cap- in a note to Socrates (H. E. ii. 30), viz. that
padocia, or Armenia ; Lucifer to Syria there were three synods there, each issuing a
Eusebius of Vercelli into Palestine (cf. different creed. The first, in 351, at which Pho-
Athan. Apol. Const. 27). In 366 Liberius, bp. tinus was depiosed, published a confession in
of Rome, was summoned to Milan, where Greek. At the second, in 357, Hosius was com-
Constantius was residing, and allowed three pelled to be present and his subscription was
days to choose between signing the condemn- obtained by force to a creed written in Latin,
ation of Athanasius or going into exile. He called by Hilarius " blasphemia apud Sirmium
chose the latter, and was banished to Beroea per Osium et Potamium conscripta " (0pp. ed.
in Thrace. From the first the object of the Migne, t. ii. col. 487). The third Sirmian
Arians had been to gain the great Hosius. creed, called the " Dated Creed " from its
" As long as he escaped their wicked machin- naming the consuls, was agreed upon at a
ations they thought they had accomplished convention of bishops in May 359. This was
nothing. We have done everything, they said the creed afterwards produced by Ursacius
to Constantius. We have banished the bishop and Valens at the synod of Ariminum (cf.
of the Romans, and before him a very great Athan. de Synod. 48). Socrates, indeed (H. E.
number of other bishops, and have filled every ii. 30), says that three creeds were drawn up
HOSIUS HOSIUS 501

at the same synod of Sirmium as that which his seat. It is very possible that the first part
deposed Photinus a. d. 3 5 1)

one in Greek and of the story may have had some foundation,
— (

two in Latin neither of which agreed to- as a letter is extant (Hilar. Frag. xii. t. ii.
gether. But this is clearly an error. Sozomen col. 713, ed. Migne) from Eusebius of Vercelli
says (H. E. iv. 12) that "Hosius had certainly, to Gregory of Spain {c. 360), congratulating
with the view of arresting the contention ex- him on having withstood the transgressor
cited by Valens, Ursacius, and Germinius, Hosius. Among ancient writers, no one
consented, though by compulsion, with some has referred to the lapse of Hosius so bitterly as
other bishops at Sirmium to refrain from the Hilary of Poictiers. This is the more remark-
use of the terms Homoousion and Homoiou- able as he had never heard of the Nicene Creed
sion, because such terms do not occur in the until he went into exile (Hilar, de Syn. c. 91,
Holy Scriptures and are beyond the under- ad fin. vol. ii. col. 545, ed. Migne). He charges
standing of men." These very expressions Hosius and Potamius, bp. of Lisbon, with having
occur in the creed set forth at Sirmium in drawn up the second creed of Sirmium, which
Latin, and afterwards translated into Greek, he designates in one place {0pp. ed. Migne,
which Socrates gives {I.e.), and there is no t. ii. col. 487) as the " blasphemia," in another
room to doubt that this was the confession (col. 599) as" deliramentaOsii"; and says (col.
which Hosius signed. 539) that his fall was due to his having been too
It may be doubted, says Dean Stanley {East. anxious to get away from Sirmium and die in
Ch. lect. vii. c. 3), " whether in his own age the his own country. These hard sayings occur in
authority of Hosius in the theological world Hilary's treatise de Synodis, written probably
was not even higher than that of Athanasius." in 358, a year after the second synod of Sir-
The Arians, therefore, would naturally make mium, at which Hosiuswas forced to bepresent.
the most of the concession wrung from him. Hilary himself tells us {de Syn. c. 63, t. ii.
Those who constantly slandered Athanasius col. 533) that the majority of those with whom
would not have many scruples about calum- he was then living in exile had no true ac-

niating Hosius. Epiphanius {Haer. 73), about quaintance with God in other words, held

20 years later, says that the Arians thought Arian opinions " Ex majori parte Asianae
they could condemn the teaching of the church decern provinciae intra quas consisto, vere
as to the Homoousion by producing letters Deum nesciunt." Whatever tidings came to
fraudulently procured from the venerable him would therefore reach him through Arian
Hosius, stating that the substance was dis- channels. His means of information are not
similar. Sozomen says {H. E. iv. 12) that to be compared with those of Athanasius. He
Eudoxius, bp. of Antioch, c. 358, upheld the is, moreover, the only ancient writer who says
heresy of Aetius, that the Son is dissimilar to that Hosius had any hand in the composition
the Father, and rejected the terms Homo- of the creed of the second council of Sirmium,
ousion and Homoiousion. When he received and any combination between Hosius and
the letter of Hosius he spread a report that Potamius, the reputed author with him of this
Liberius had also made the same admission confession, isforotherreasonsmostimprobable.
(iv. 15). These letters were most probably The one had been all his life a consistent sup-
spurious. There is reason also to believe that porter of the Nicene Creed, the other a rene-
the creed actually signed by Hosius was inter- gade. Moreover, Hosius at this time was
polated and sent into the East in his name. about 100 years old. At such an age men do
This may perhaps explain the expression of not willingly invent new creeds ;they are far
Hilarius {contr. Constantium, c. 23, col. 580, more likely to cling tenaciously to old ones.
ed. Migne, vol. ii.) when he speaks of " delira- Sulpicius Severus (c. 404 or 405) speaks of
menta Osii et incrementa Ursacii et Valentis " the lapse of Hosius as resting on a popular
(cf. Newman's notes to Athanasius, Eng. rumour which seemed quite incredible unless
trans, vol. i. p. 162). extreme old age had enfeebled his powers and
Exaggerated reports of the fall of Hosius made him childish {Hist. Sac. lib. 2).
were spread by the Arians far and wide. His To clear his memory from the charges of
perversion was their strongest argument Hilary it is sufficient to point out that the
against the Catholic party in Gaul. To this synod of Sardica spoke of Hosius as a man of
a contemporary writer, Phoebadius, bp. of a " happy old age, who, on account of his age,
Agennum, replies {Lib. contra Arian. c. 23, his confession, and the many labours he has
Patr. Lat. ed. Migne, vol. xx. col. 30):
" Novit undergone, is worthy of all reverence." So
enim mundus quae in hanc tenuerit aetatem public a testimony to his high character is
qua constantia apud Sardicam et in Nicaeno enough to silence all detraction, and the
tractatu assensus sit et damnaverit Arianos. affectionate and reverential language in which
... Si nonaginta fere annis male credidit, post the great Athanasius describes the passing
nonaginta ilium recte sentire non credam." frailty of his venerable friend, the father of
The Donatists also, whose views Hosius had the bishops, is very different from the furious
opposed equally strongly, did not fail to and intemperate tone in which it is referred
calumniate him. Augustine vindicates his to by Hilary. " This true Hosius, and his
memory {Lib. contra Parmen. lib. i. c 4, blameless life," says Athanasius, " were
§ 7, ed. Migne, vol. ix. col. 38). Marcellus and known to all." As he relates the violence used
Faustinus, two presbyters who were followers towards him, he expresses only the tenderest
of Lucifer of Cagliari, relate (Libellum ad commiseration for his friend ; but against
Theodos. c. 383 or 384) that on the return of Constantius, his persecutor, his indignation
Hosius to Spain, Gregory, bp. of Elvira, re- knows no bounds {Hist. Arian. 46).
fused to hold communion with him, and as There is some doubt whether Hosius suc-
Hosius was in the act of pronouncing his cumbed to the violence used against him at
deposition he was struck dumb and fell from Sirmium and died there in 357, or whether,
.

502 HUNNERIC HUNNERIC


after subscribing the Arian formula, he was he ascended the throne he ordered diligent
permitted to end his days in Spain. This search to be made for Manicheans, of whom

involves the further question whether before he burnt many and exiled more across the
his death he recanted, and was readmitted sea, being commended for this by Victor.
into the Catholic church, or retained his Arian His subjects were oppressed with taxes and
opinions to the last. The story told by the exactions, but he relaxed the strictness of his
Luciferians and the charges brought against father's laws against the orthodox, and, at
his memory by his old enemies the Donatists the intercession of his sister-in-law Placidia,
serve at least to shew that, according to the widow of the emperor Olybrius, and the
ecclesiastical tradition, he died in Spain. The emperor Zeno, allowed (a.d. 481) a bp. of
question is fully examined by Baronius (sub Carthage (Eugenius) to be elected, the see
ann. 357, cc xxx.-xxxv'i.), whodoesnot believe having been vacant since the death of Deo-
the story told by the Luciferians. The story of gratias in 457. He made this concession upon
the apostate Marcellinus is not confirmed by condition that a similar liberty should be
any contemporary writer. Had it been true, allowed the Arian bishops and laity in Zeno's
it must have been known to Athanasius, who dominions, or else the newly elected bishops
says distinctly that Hosius yielded to the and all other orthodox bishops with their
outrages of the Arians " for a time, as being clergy would be banished to the Moors.
old and infirm in body " (Apol. pro Fug. § 5), To secure the succession to his son, Hun-
and that " at the approach of death, as it were neric sent his brother Theodoric into exile and
by his last testament, he bore witness to the put to death his wife and children. The Arian
force which had been used towards him, and patriarch of Carthage, who was supposed to
abjured the Arian heresy and gave strict favour Theodoric, was burnt alive, and many
charge that no one should receive it " (Hist. of his clergy shared his fate or were thrown to
Arian. 45). These words prove that his lapse wild beasts ; nor did Hunneric spare the
was but a temporary one, that he died in com- friends his father had commended to him on
munion with the church, and in the midst of his his death-bed if s,uspected of being inclined to
friends. Hilary's words as to his anxiety to support his brother. Hunneric now took
leaveSirmium andbe buried in his own country measures against the orthodox. The influence
imply that he obtained his wi'^h to return to of Eugenius on the Vandals was especially
Spain. The date of his death is a little uncer- dreaded by the Arian clergy, at whose sug-
tain, but from Marcellinus we learn that it was gestion the king forbade him to preach in
soon after his return to Spain and before the public or to allow persons in Vandal dress to
concession he had made to the Arians had enter Catholic churches. The bishop replied
become widely known. As the treatise of that the house of God was open to all. A
Athanasius (Hist. Arian.) was written between great number of Catholics, being the king's
358 and 360, it must have been before that servants, wore the Vandal dress. Men were
period. Some writers favour the end of 357 therefore posted at the church doors with long
;

others think he lived till 359. rakes, with which any person entering in
His profound acquaintance with Christian Vandal dress was seized by the hair as so to
doctrine was combined with a singularly tear off hair and scalp together. Many died
blameless and holy life. He seems to have in consequence. Hunneric next deprived
had great tact and judgment and a concilia- Catholics who held posts at the court or
tory disposition. The shadow cast upon his belonged to the army of their offices and pay ;

name by the concession extorted from him by many of the former were forced to work in the
the Arians must not be allowed to obscure the fields near Utica and the latter were deprived
rightful honour due to him for his labours and of their property and exiled to Sicily or Sar-
sufferings on behalf of the Catholic faith. dinia. A law confiscating the property of
" Even Christianity," says Dean Milman deceased bishops and imposing a fine of 500
(Hist, of Christianity, vol. if. p. 427, ed. 1875), solidi on each new bishop was contemplated,
" has no power over that mental imbecility but abandoned for fear of retaliatory measures
which accompanies the decay of physical against the Arians in the Eastern empire.
strength, and this act of feebleness ought not Virgins were hung up naked with heavy
for an instant to be set against the unblem- weights attached to their feet, and their
ished virtue of a whole life." breasts and backs burnt with red-hot irons, to
A very full account of his life, and a dis- extort, if possible, a confession of immorality,
cussion of various points in his history, will be which might be used against the bishops and
found in Gams (Die Kirchengesch. von Spanien, clergy. Many expired under the torture and
Bandii.pp. 1-309, Regensburg, 1864). Seealso the survivors were maimed for life. A body
Hefele, Conciliengesch vols. i. andii., of which of Catholic bishops, priests, deacons, and
there is an Eng. trans. Tillemont, Mem. t. vii. p. laity, numbering 4,976, was sent into banish-
;

300, 4to ed.


; Dom Ceillier, s.v. t. iii. 392, new ment among the savage Moors of the desert.
ed. ; Zahn, Const, der Gr. u. die Kirche, 1876 ; Victor gives a touching description of their
Florez, EspanaSagrada, LaProvinciadeBetica, sufferings during their marches by day and
vol. ix. and x. (Madrid, i754)- [t.d.c.m.] in crowded dens at night.
Hunneric (Ugnericus, Hunerix, Hono- These cruelties were only the prelude of a
richus), eldest son and successor (Jan. 24, more extensive and systematic persecution.
477) of Genseric. king of the Vandals. Sent Hunneric, on Ascension Day, 483, published
to Rome in his youth as a hostage for the an edict to Eugenius, and the other Catholic
observance of the treaty his father had made or, as he termed them, Homoousian bishops,
with Valentinian III., he married (462), after ordering them to assemble at Carthage on
the sack of Rome, the captive Eudocia, eldest Feb. I, to meet the Arian bishops in conference
of the daughters of that emperor. Soon after and decide the points in controversy between
HUNNERIG HUNNERIC 603
them, promising them a safe-conduct. Even of accounts of the constancy and suffering of
before the conference, however, the persecu- the Catholics. Eugenius was entrusted to the
tion began. Victor tells of various bishops custody of the cruel Antonius, the Arian bp.
cruelly beaten and sent into exile, while on of a city in Tripoli, where his hardships
Sept. 20, Laetus, bp. of Nepta, was burnt to brought on a stroke of paralysis. Bp. Habet-
terrify the rest of the Catholic party. When deus was bound and gagged by Antonius and
the meeting assembled, the Catholics were forced to undergo the rite of a second baptism,
indignant to find Cyrila, the Arian patriarch, which was imposed also by force or fraud upon
in the presidential chair. After mutual re- many of the orthodox. The Vandals, who
criminations the orthodox presented a state- had renounced Arianism, were treated with
ment of their belief and their arguments for peculiar cruelty. Some had their eyes put
it. The Arians received it with indignation, out, others their hands, feet, noses, or ears cut
as in it the orthodox claimed the name of off. Hunneric, to insult Uranius, and Zeno
Catholics, and falsely suggested to the king who had sent him to intercede for the Cath-
that the disturbance was the fault of their olics, ordered some of the cruellest scenes of
opponents. Hunneric seized this pretext for torture to be enacted in the streets through
publishing, on Feb. 25, an edict he had which he had to pass on his way to the palace.
already prepared and distributed to the The most celebrated event of the persecu-
magistrates throughout his dominions, order- tion occurred at Typasa, a seaport town of
ing all churches of the orthodox party to be Mauritania. A former notary of Cyrila's
handed over with their endowments to the having been consecrated as the Arian bishop
Arians, and further, after reciting the penalties of that town, the greater part of the citizens
imposed on the Donatists in 412 and 414 by took ship to Spain. A few, not finding
edicts of Honorius (Codex Theodosianus, XVI. room on board, remained, whom the Arian
v. 52, 54), enacting that the Catholics should bishop on his arrival endeavoured, first by
be subject to the same penalties and disabili- persuasion and then by threats, to induce
ties. Pardon was promised to those who to become Arians. They refused, and having
should renounce Cathohcism before June i. assembled in a house, began publicly to
Persecution, however, began before the three celebrate the divine mysteries. The bishop
months' grace had expired. The first to thereupon dispatched secretly to Carthage an
suffer were the bishops assembled at Carthage. accusation against them to the king, who sent
They were expelled from the town with no- an officer with orders to have their tongues
thing but the clothes they had on, and were cut out and their right hands cut off before
obliged to beg their bread. The inhabitants the assembled province in the forum. This
were forbidden to give them shelter or food was done, but they continued to speak as
under pain of being burnt alive with their plainly as before. This is attested by Victor,
whole families. Wliile outside the walls in who was probably an eye-witness ; by the
this miserable state, they were summoned to eye-witnesses Aeneas of Gaza, the Platonic
meet at the Temple of Memory persons sent philosopher (Theophrastus, in Migne, Patr.
by the king, and were required to take an oath Gk. Ixxxv. 1000), Justinian (Cod. i. 27), and
to support the succession of Hilderic, the Marcellinus (Chron. in Migne, Patr. Lat. li.
king's son, and to hold no correspondence 933), all of whom had seen some of these
with countries beyond the sea. On these persons at Constantinople ; by Procopius (de
conditions the king promised to restore them Bella Vandalico, i. 8) ; Victor Tununensis
their churches. Some took the oath, but (Chron. in Migne, Patr. Lat. Ixviii. 946) and ;

others refused, excusing themselves by the pope Gregory the Great (Dial. iii. 32 in Migne,
precept " Swear not at all." They were then Patr. Lat. Ixxvii. 293), and has generally been
told to separate, the names and sees of the considered not only a miracle, but the most
bishops of each party were taken down, and remarkable one on record after apostolic times.
they were all sent to prison. A few days The variety of the witnesses and the consist-
afterwards those who had taken the oath were ency of their testimony on all material points
told that, as they had infringed the precept give it claims to belief, such as few apparently
of the Gospel, the king banished them to the preternatural events possess. Dr. Middleton
country, assigning them land to cultivate, on was the first to suggest (Free Inquiry, 313-316)
condition that they should not chant, pray, that, assuming the account true, it by no
baptize, ordain, or receive any into the church. means follows that the event was miraculous,
To those who had refused was said, " You a position he maintains by instances of a
refused to swear because you did not wish our person born without a tongue, and of another
master's son to succeed him. Therefore you who had lost it by disease, who were able to
are exiled to Corsica, where you shall cut speak. Mr. Twistleton (The Tongue not
timber for our master's navy." Of the 466 Essential to Speech) has shewn this explana-
attending the council, 88 fell away to Arian- tion probable. He gives numerous cases of
ism ;of the others one was a martyr, one a similarly mutilated persons in Eastern coun-
confessor, 46 were banished to Corsica, and thetries, and of persons in England whose tongues
rest to the country parts of Africa. had been removed by surgical operations, who
Meanwhile throughout Africa a most cruel could still pronounce distinctl}' all lettersexcept
persecution raged, neither age nor sex being d and t one of the latter he had actually seen
;

a protection ;some were cruelly beaten, others and conversed with. He sums up by saying :

hung, and some burnt alive. Noble ladies " The final result seems to be that questions
were stripped naked and tortured in the public connected with the phenomenon of speech in
streets. Victorian, a former proconsul of the African confessors are purely within the
Carthage, was the most illustrious victim domain of natural science, and that there is no
pf the persecution. Victor's fifth book is full reason for asserting or suspecting any miracu-
604 HYGINUS IBAS
lous intervention in the matter." The perse- Hypatia In the synodical book of the
(2).
cution continued to rage till Hunneric died, on council of Ephesus is given a letter, from its
the following Dec. ii. Like the persecutor style evidently the work of a female writer (un-
Galerius his body mortified, and bred worms. named), which is falsely attributed to Hypatia

Sources. Victor Vitensis, de Persecutione ( t
) the philosopher of Alexandria. It complains
of the condemnation and banishment of
Vandalica, ii. iv. and v. in Migne, Patr. Lat.
Iviii., with Ruinart's Appendix Procopius
; Nestorius, which took place 17 years after the
de Bello Vandalico, i. 8 ; Appendix to Pros- death of Hypatia. The writer is struck by
per's Chron. in Migne, Patr. Lat. Ii. 605 Chron.
; the teaching of the Christians that God died
of Victor Tununensis in ib. Ixviii. Gibbon for men she founds her plea for Nestorius
;

(c. xxxvii.) gives a good narrative of the perse- on an appeal to reason and Scripture. Baluze,
cution, and Ceillier (.Auteurs sacres, x. 452-462) Concil. App. p. 837 (Paris, 1683, fol.) Ceillier, ;

may also be consulted. [f-d-] viii. 387. [w.M.s.]


Hyginus (1), bp. of Rome after Telesphorus, HypatiUS (19), presbyter and hegumenus in
probably from 137 to 141. Our early author- the first half of the 5th cent, of the monastery
ities for the dates and duration of his episco- in Bithynia, once presided over and afterwards
pate are confused, as in the case of other abandonedby Rufinus. His Life, by Callinicus
bishops of that early period. Anastasius {Lib. his disciple (Boll. Acta SS. 17 Jun. iii. 303),
Pontif ) says that he was a Greek, son of an tells how his zeal brought him into collision
Athenian philosopher, of unknown genealogy. with his lukewarm bishop Eulalius of Chalce-
Several spurious decretals are assigned to him. don. Understanding that Nestorius, before
See Mart. Rom. under Jan. 11 also Lightfoot,
; his formal accusation, was broaching novel
on the Early Roman successions, Apost. Path. opinions, Hypatius had the patriarch's name"
part i. vol. i. [j.b y.] — removed from the office books of the church
Hypatia (1). Socrates {H. E. vii. 15) says : adjoining his monastery (§§ 14, 38, 51, 53).
" There was a lady in Alexandria, by name Eulalius, alarmed at this daring act, which
Hypatia, daughter of the philosopher Theon. amounted to an excommunication of the all-
She advanced to such a point of mental culture powerful patriarch, remonstrated and threat-
as to surpass all the philosophers of her age and ened, but Hypatius undauntedly persisted.
to receive the office of lecturer in the Platonic Again, when Leontius, the prefect of Con-
school, of which Plotinus had been the stantinople, was about to re-establish at
founder, and there expound all philosophic Chalcedon the Olympic games abolished by
learning to any desirous of it. Students of Constantine, Hypatius, finding that Eulalius
philosophy came from all quarters to hear would do nothing, openly declared that he
her. The dignified freedom of speech, which would by main force defeat this restoration of
her training had implanted in her, enabled idolatry at the head of his monks, though it
her to appear even before the public magis- should cost him his life. Leontius, having
trates with entire modesty none could feel had warning of this opposition, relinquished
;

ashamed to see her take her station in the the project and returned to Constantinople
midst of men. She was reverenced and (§ 45). A certain ascetic archimandrite,
admired even the more for it, by reason of the Alexander, from Asia Minor, having taken up
noble temperance of her disposition. This his abode in the capital with 100 monks, gained
then was the woman upon whom malicious much reputation for sanctity, but in consequence
envy now made its attack. She was wont to of his bold rebukes of the imperial household
have frequent communications with Orestes was ordered to leave. The exiles betook them-
[the prefect] ;this aroused enmity against her selves to the church of Hypatius, but Eulalius,
in the church community. The charge was obeying orders from the palace, had them
that it was through her that Orestes was beaten and expelled. Hypatius immediately
prevented from entering upon friendly rela- welcomed them into his monastery and
tions with the bishop [Cyril]. Accordingly dressed their wounds. The bishop threatened
some passionate fanatics, led by Peter the fresh violence, but the rustic neighbours
Reader, conspired together and watched her volunteered a defence, and a riot was im-
as she was returning home from some journey, minent when a messenger from the empress
tore her from her chariot, and dragged her to ordered that they should not be molested.
the church called Caesarium there they
; Alexander and his party retired in peace and
stripped her and killed her with oyster shells, founded a monastery near, the inmates bearing
and, having torn her in pieces, gathered to- the name of Acoemetae, the Sleepless f§ 57 ;

gether the limbs to a place called Cinaron, and AcoEMETAE in D. C. A., and the Bollandist
consumed them with fire. This deed oc- account of their founder in Acta SS. Jan. i.
casioned no small blame to Cyril and the 1018). [C.H.]
Alexandrian church ;for murders, fightings,
and the like are wholly alien to those who are
minded to follow the things of Christ. This
event happened in the fourth year of the
episcopate of Cyril, in the consulships of Ibas, bp. of Edessa c a.d. 435-457, a Syrian
Honorius (for the tenth time) and Theodosius by birth. His name in Syriac is Ihiba or Hiba
(for the sixth time) in the month of March, at = Donatus. He appears first as a presbyter
the season of the fast " {i.e. Mar. 415). Little of the church of Edessa during the episcopate
can be added to this. Synesius of Cyrene of Rabbulas, and warmly espousing the theo-
(afterwards bp. of Ptolemais) was a devoted logical views which his bishop uncompromis-
disciple of hers. According to Suidas, she ingly opposed. He was an ardent admirer of
married Isidorus. No trustworthy account con- the writings of Theodore of Mopsuestia, which
nects Cyril directly with her murder, [j.r.m.] he translated into Syriac and diligently dis-
IBAS IBAS 506

seminated through the East. The famous treatment to all who participated in their
theological school of Edessa, of which, accord- proceedings. No immediate step seems to
ing to some accounts, Ibas was head, and to have followed the presentation of the libel-
which the Christian youth from Persia and In 445 Ibas was summoned by Domnus to the
adjacent lands resorted for education, offered synod held at Antioch in the matter of Athan-
great facilities for this propagation of Theo- asius of Perrha, but he excused himself by
dore's tenets. The growing popularity of letter {ib. iv. 739). The sympathies of Dom-
doctrines which appeared to him decidedly nus inclined to Ibas, and he shewed no
heretical caused Rabbulas much alarm, and readiness to entertain the charges brought
he endeavoured to get Theodore's works against him. At last, in Lent 448, the four
anathematized and burnt. The church of chief delators presented their indictment
Edessa was generally favourable to Theodore's before Domnus and the council of the East in
teaching, and Ibas was supported by the a manner too formal to be neglected. Dom-
majority against their bishop. He attended nus consequently summoned Ibas to appear
the council of Ephesus in 431 as a presbyter, before him after Easter to answer the charges.
was cognizant of Cyril's autocratic conduct The council was held at Antioch, and was
{Ep. ad Mar. Labbe, Cone. iv. 662), and wrote
;
attended by only a few bishops. The existing
in 433 the letter to Maris, then or subsequently Acts bear only nine signatures {ib. iv. 643).
bp. of Hardaschir in Persia, to which sub- Ibas in person answered the 18 charges, mostly
sequent events gave celebrity. Maris had of a frivolous character and destitute of proof :

been at Edessa previous to the Nestorian e.g. that he had appropriated a jewelled chalice
controversy, and Ibas wrote this letter to tell to his own use that the wine at the Eucharist
;

him what had occurred since his visit. Though was inferior in quality and quantity the ;

evidently written under great exasperation, it malversation of sums given for the ransom of
shews Ibas as a man of independent judgment, captives ; simoniacal ordinations and the
free from party spirit. Nestorius is severely admission of unfit persons to the ministry and
censured in it for refusing the title deordKos to episcopate, especially his nephew Daniel,
the Virgin, and Ibas accuses Cyril of Apollin- stated to be a scandalous person, whom he
arianism, and denounces the heresy of his 12 had made bp. of Charrae. The most weighty
chapters, charging him with maintaining the charges were that he had anathematized Cyril
perfect identity of the manhood and Godhead and charged him with heresy that he was a
;

in Christ, and denying the Catholic doctrine of Nestorian and especially that at Easter 445,
;

the union of two Natures in One Person (Labbe, in the presence of his clergy, he had spoken the
iv. 661, V. 510). Rabbulas dying in 435 or blasphemous words, " I do not envy Christ
436,3 reactionary wave made Ibas hissuccessor. His becoming God, for I can become God nc
This was very distasteful to those who held the lessthan He." " This the day that Jesus
is
strong anti-Nestorian views of their latebishop, Christ became God "
{ib. iv. 647-654 Liberat.
;

and they speedily planned to secure his deposi- c. 12). The first charge he acknowledged, the
tion, by spreading chargesagainsthim of openly others he indignantly repudiated as base
preaching heretical doctrines. The accusa- slanders. Only two of the accusers appeared.
tions soon reached the ears of Theodosius II. Samuel and Cyrus had gone to Constantinople,
and Proclus, patriarch of Constantinople. To in defiance of the terms on which the excom-
Proclus the matter appeared so serious that munication had been taken off, to lay their
towards the close of 437 he wrote to John of complaint before the emperor and patriarch,
Antioch, as the leading prelate of the East, the favourable feeling of Domnus towards the
though really having no canonical jurisdiction accused being too evident for them to hope
over Osrhoene, begging him to persuade Ibas, for an impartial trial. Domnus and the
if innocent, to remove the scandal by con- council declined to proceed in the absence of
demning publicly certain propositions chiefly the chief witnesses, and the case seemed to be
drawn from Theodore's writings against the postponed indefinitely (Labbe, iv. 642 seq. ;

errors of Nestorius. The same demand was Theod. Ep. in). Eulogius and Maras, there-
made by Proclus of all the Eastern bishops ;
upon, hastened to join their fellow-conspirators
but Ibas and the bishops generally refused at Constantinople, where they found a power-
to condemn Theodore's propositions {ib. v. ful party strongly hostile to the Eastern
511-514). Though foiled so far, the mal- bishops, Theodoret in particular. Their
contents at Edessa maintained their hostile faction was soon strengthened by the arrival
attitude to their bishop. Their leaders were of Uranius, the prime mover of the whole
four presbyters, Samuel, Cyrus, Eulogius, and cabal, and half a dozen more Edessene clergy.
Maras, acting at the instigation of one of Ibas's The emperor and Flavian, who had succeeded
own suffragans, Uranius, bp. of Himeria, a Proclus as patriarch, listened to their com-
pronounced Eutychian. Domnus, who had plaints, but declined to hear them officially.
in 442 succeeded his uncle John as bp. of The case was remitted to the East, and by an
Antioch, visiting Hierapolis for the enthroniza- imperial commission, dated Oct. 26, 448,
tion of the new bp. Stephen, the conspirators Uranius of Himeria, Photius of Tyre, just
chose that moment for action. Cyrus and elected Sept. 9, 448, on the deposition of
Eulogius formally laid before Domnus the Irenaeus, and Eustathius of Berytus were
accusation against Ibas, signed by about 17 deputed to hear it, and Damascius, the tribune
clergy of Edessa, and supported by 30 {ib. iv. and secretary of state, was dispatched as
658). Ibas, when starting for Hierapolis to imperial commissioner. The whole proceed-
pay his respects to Domnus, heard of the ing was manifestly illegal. It was contrary
and at once summoned his clergy,
accusation, to the canons that bishops should be subjected
pronounced excommunication on Cyrus and to the judgment of other bishops, two belong-
Eulogius as calumniators, threatened the same ing to another province, on the strength of an
506 IBAS IBAS
imperial decree. No one, however, protested. Chaereas had come merely to ratify under
The imperial power was regarded as absolute. the colour of judicial proceedings a sentence
The tribunal also was grossly unfair. One of of condemnation already passed. Chaereas,
the three judges, Uranius, was ringleader of however, was moving too slowly for their
the movement against Ibas ; the other two hatred, and on Sun. Apr. 17 the excitement
had obtained their sees by the instrumentality in church was so violent that the count was
of Uranius (Martin, Le Brigandage d'Ephese, compelled to promise that the verdict of the
pp. 1 18-120). Tyre was named as the place of synod of Berytus should be reviewed and a
trial. The exasperation stirred up there by the new investigation commenced. This began
blasphemies charged against Ibas was so great on Apr. 18 all the old charges were repro-
;

that it was thought politic to remove the trial duced by the same accusers, amid wild yells
to Berytus to avoid disturbances (Labbe, iv. of " Ibas to the gallows, to the mines, to the
636). The court sat in the hall of Eustathius's circus, to exile " drowning every attempt at
episcopal residence. The indictment was explanation or defence. Chaereas, as had
produced by Ibas's accusers. Ibas laid before been predetermined, addressed a report to the
his judges a memorial signed by many of his imperial government, declaring the charges
clergy, denying that he had ever uttered the proved and on June 27 the emperor, acknow-
,

alleged blasphemies (ib. iv. 667-671). Only ledging the receipt of the document, ordered
three witnesses supported the accusation, and that a bishop who would command the con-
brought forward a copy of the celebrated letter fidence of the faithful should be substituted
to Maris [ib. iv. 659-662). The commissioners, for Ibas (Perry, The Second Synod of Ephesus ;

avoiding any judicial decision, brought about a Martin, ti.s. t. ii. c. ix.). Only a legally consti-
friendly arrangement. His enemies agreed to tuted synod could depose him, but meanwhile
withdraw their accusations on Ibas promising his enemies' malice could be gratified by his
that he would forget the past, regard his accusers maltreatment. He was forbidden to enter
as his children, and remit any fresh difficulty Edessa, apprehendedand treated as the vilest of
for settlement to Domnus ; and that, to avoid criminals, dragged about from province to pro-
suspicion of malversation, the church revenues vince, changing his quarters 40 times and being
of Edessa should be administered, like those in 20 different prisons (Labbe, iv. 634; Liberat.
of Antioch, by oeconomi. Ibas gave equal c. 12 ; Facund. lib. vi. c. i). The council of
satisfaction on theological points. He en- Ephesus, so notorious for its scandalous vio-
gaged to publicly anathematize Nestorius and lence, which gained for it, from Leo the Great
all who thought with him on his return, and (Ep. 95), the title of the " Gang of Robbers,"
declared the identity of his doctrine with that opened on Aug. 3. One of its objects was to get
agreed upon by John and Cyril, and that he rid finally of Ibas. This was the work of the
accepted the decrees of Ephesus equally with second session, held on Aug. 22. Ibas was
those of Nicaea as due to the inspiration of not cited to appear, being then in prison at
the Holy Spirit. The concordat was signed, Antioch (Labbe, iv. 626, 634). Before the
Uranius alone dissenting, Feb. 25, 449 (ib. witnesses were allowed to enter, the three
iv. 630-648). The truce had no elements bishops who had conducted the investigation
of permanence, and a very few weeks saw it at Tyre and Berytus were asked for an account
broken. The Eutychian party, resolved on of their proceedings. Instead of declaring the
the ruin of Ibas and irritated at their failure fact that, after examination made, they had
at Berytus, left no stone unturned to over- acquitted Ibas, they made pitiful excuses as
throw it. All-powerful at Constantinople to their inability to arrive at the truth from
through the intrigues of Chrysaphius, Dios- the distance of the place of trial to Edessa,
corusandhis partisans easilyobtainedfrom the and endeavoured to shift the burden by saying
feeble emperor, indignant at the condemnation that an investigation had subsequently been
of Eutyches, an edict summoning a general held at Edessa itself, which had received the
council at Ephesus for Aug. i, 449. Reports approbation of the emperor, and that the
diligently spread in Edessa during his absence wisest course for the council would be to
of Ibas's heterodoxy made his reception so inquire what was the decision there. This
unfavourable that he was obliged to leave the advice was followed. The monks of Edessa
town and call upon the " magister militiae " and the other parties to the indictment were
for a guard to protect him. He soon dis- admitted, and the whole of the depositions and
covered that all appeal to the civil power was correspondence read to the assembly. As the
idle ; he was regarded as a public enemy to reading of the document ended, wild male-
be crushed at all hazards. The count Chae- dictions burst forth, invoking every kind of
reas as civil governor of Osrhoene, but with vengeance, temporal and eternal, on the head
secret instructions from Constantinople eman- of this " second Iscariot," this " veritable
ating from Chrysaphius and Eutyches, was Satan." " Nestorius and Ibas should be
deputed to arrest and imprison him and burnt alive together. The destruction of the
reopen the suit. When Chaereas entered two would be the deliverance of the world."
Edessa, Apr. 12, 440, to commence the trial, Eulogius, the presbyter of Edessa, who had
he was met by a turbulent body of abbats and been one of the first accusers of Ibas before
monks and their partisans, clamouring furious- Domnus, followed with a summary of the
ly for the immediate expulsion and condemna- proceedings from their commencement, speci-
tion of Ibas and his Nestorian crew. Ibas was fying all the real or supposed crimes laid to
" a second Judas," " an adversary of Christ," his charge. The question of deposition was
"
an offshoot of Pharaoh." " To the fire with put to the council, and carried nem. con.
him and all his race." Two days later the Among those who voted for it were Eustathius
inquiry began in the absence of Ibas amid of Berytus and Photius of Tyre, who had
violent interruptions. All Edessa knew that previously acquitted him ont he same evid-
I6AS IDATIUS 507

ence. The sentence was that he should be the relics of St. Thomas the Apostle, who was
deposed from the episcopate and priesthood, said, after preaching in Parthia, to have been
deprived even of lay communion, and com- buried there (Socr. H. E. iv. 18).
pelled to restore the money of which it was Ibas was a translator and disseminator of
pretended he had robbed the poor. Ibas, the writings of others rather than an original
twice acquitted, was condemned without being author. His translations of the theological
heard or even summoned and no protest was ;
works of Theodore of Mopsuestia, Diodorus
raised in his favour, even by those v/ho, a few of Tarsus, Theodoret, and Nestorius, were
months before, had given him their suffrage actively spread through Syria, Persia, and the
(Martin, u.s. t. iii. c. ii. p. i8i ; Labbe, iv. East, and were very influential in fostering the
674 ; Chron. Edess. anno 756 Assemani, ; Nestorian tenets which have, even to the
Bibl. Or. i. 202). We have no certain know- present day, characterized the Christians of
ledge of what befel Ibas on his deposition. those regions. His influence was permanent
At the beginning of 451 the deposed and in the celebrated theological school of Edessa,
banished bishops were allowed to return from in spite of the efforts of Nonnus to eradicate
exile, but the question of their restoration was it, until its final overthrow and the banishment

reserved for the fourth general council which of its teachers to Persia. Tillem. Mem. eccl.
met atChalcedon A.D. 451. In the gth session, t. XV. ;Assemani, Bibl. Orient, t. i. pp. 199 seq.,
Oct. 26, the case of Ibas came before the t. iii. pp. 70-74 Cave, Hist. Lit. t. i. p. 426
;
;

assembled bishops. On his demand to be Facund. Defens. Triuni. Capitul. Schrockh,


;

restored in accordance with the verdict of XV. 438, xviii. 307-311; Perry, Acts of the
Photius and Eustathius at Berytus and Tyre, Second Council of Ephesus Abbe Martin, Actes
;

the Acts of that synod were read, and the next du Brigandage d'Ephese Le Pseudo-synode
;

day the pope's legates gave their opinion that d'Ephese. [e.v.]
Ibas, being unlawfully deposed, should be at Idatius (3) (Idacius surnamed Lemicen-
;

once restored. After much discussion this was sis), bp. of Aquae Flaviae (Chaves or Chiaves)
carried unanimously. The legates led the in Gallicia, from c. 427 to 470, and author of a
way, declaring his letter to Maris orthodox, well-known Chronicle which was one of the
and commanding his restitution. All the various continuations of Jerome. Our only
prelates agreed in this verdict, the condition sources for his life are notices in his own work,
being that he should anathematize Nestorius for the meagre Life by Isidore in de Vir. III.
and Eutyches and accept the tome of Leo. c. ix. is merely a summary of Idatius's own
Ibas consented without any difficulty. " He prologue. The existing material was elabor-
had anathematized Nestorius already in his ately sifted and put together by Florez {Esp.
writings, and would do so again ten thousand Sagr. iv., Madrid, 1749), and less completely
times, together with Eutyches and all who by Garzon, whose ed. of Idatius was pub. at
teach the One Nature, and would accept all Brussels in 1845 by P. F. X. de Ram.
that the council holds as truth." On this he Birthplace and Bishopric. —
Idatius tells us
was unanimously absolved, restored to his in the prologue to his Chronicle that he was
episcopal dignity, and voted as bp. of Edessa born "
civitate," " Lemica " being
in Lemica
at the subsequent sessions (Labbe, iv. 793, a copyist's error for Limica in Portugal. He
799 Facund. lib. v. c. 3). Nonnus, who had was born c. 388, shortly after the execution
;

been chosen bishop on his deposition, being of Priscillian and his companions at Treves,
legitimately ordained, was allowed to retain and about the time when, as he tells us in his
his episcopal rank, and on Ibas's death, Oct. Chronicle (ad. ann. 386), the Priscillianists,
28, 457, quietly succeeded him as metropolitan falling back on Spain after the death of their
(Labbe, iv. 891, 917). The fiction that Ibas chief, took a special hold on the province of
had disowned the letter to Maris at Chalcedon Gallicia. About a.d. 400 he was in Egypt and
(Greg. Magn. lib. viii. Ep. 14), as he was Palestine, where, as he says (Prolog, and Chron.
asserted by Justinian to have done before at ad ann. 435), he, " et infantulus et pupillus,"
Berytus, as having been forged in his name, is saw St. Jerome at Bethlehem, John bp. of
thoroughly disproved by Facundus (lib. v. Jerusalem, Eulogius of Caesarea, and Theo-
c. 2, lib. vii. c. 5). A controversy concerning philus of Alexandria. His return to Gallicia
his letter to Maris arose in the next century, may be dated c. 402 (Florez, Esp. Sagr. iv.
in the notorious dispute about the " Three 301). In 416, seven years after the irruption
Articles," when the letter was branded as of the Suevi, Alani, and Vandals into the
heterodox (together with the works of Theo- peninsula, Idatius entered the ministry, for
dore of Mopsuestia and Theodoret's writings so we must understand the entry in the Chron.
in favour of Nestorius) in the edict of Justinian, Parvum (see below) under that year, " Idatii
and was formally condemned in 553 by the conversio ad Dominum peccatoris " (cf.
fifth general council, which pronounced an Florez, I.e. p. 302), and in 427 he was made
anathema, in bold defiance of historical fact, bishop (see Prol. Esp. Sagr. iv. 348). In 431
against all who should pretend that it and the the rule of the Suevi had become so intolerable
other documents impugned had been recog- that Idatius was sent by the Gallician pro-
nized as orthodox by the council of Chalcedon vincials to Aetius in Gaul to ask for help. He
(Evagr. H. E. iv. 38 Labbe, v. 562-567). returned in 432, accompanied by the legate
;

Ibas is anathematized by the Jacobites as a Censorius, after whose departure from Gallicia
Nestorian (Assemani, t. i. p. 202). According the bishops persuaded Hermeric, the Suevian
to the Chronicle of Edessa, Ibas, during his king, to make peace with the provincials. For
episcopate, erected the new church of the about 24 years Gallicia enjoyed tranquillity
Apostles at Edessa, to which a senator gave compared with the rest of Spain, and the
a silver table of 720 lb. weight, and Anatolius, Gallician bishops found themselves to som^e ex-
praefectys mjljtum, a silver coffer to receive tent free to deal with the prevalent Priscillianist
508 IDATIUS IDATIUS
and Manichean doctrines, which had even he says, describing his second division, " I,
infected some of the episcopate {Ep. Leo Magn. undeservedly chosen to the office of the
ad Turribium Tejada y Ramiro, Colecc. de
;
episcopate, and not ignorant of all the troubles
Can. etc. ii. p. 889). Between 441 and 447 of this miserable time, have added both the
must be placed the letter of Turribius to falling landmarks ('metas ruituras') of the
Idatius and Ceponius (? bp. of Tuy) on the oppressed Roman empire, and also what is
Priscillianist apocryphal books [Esp. Sagr. xvi. more mournful still, the degenerate condition
95 ; Tejada y Ramiro, ii. 887). In 444-445, of the church order within Gallicia, which is
the confessions of certain Roman Manicheans the end of the world, the destruction of honest
having disclosed the names of their co-be- liberty by indiscriminate appointments (to
lievers in the provinces, letters were sent to bishoprics), and the almost universal decay
the provinces by pope Leo warning the of the divine discipline of religion, evils
bishops (Prosper ad ann. 444 ; see Garzon's springing from the rule of furious men and the
note 6, ed. De Ram, p. 83). Accordingly we tumults of hostile nations." This is the note
find Idatius and Turribius in 445 holding a of the whole Chronicle, which gives a vivid
trial of certain Manicheans discovered at and invaluable picture of one most important
Astorga, no doubt by aid of the papal letters, scene in the great drama of the fall of the
and forwarding a report of the trial to the Western empire, and without which we should
neighbouring metropolitan of Merida, evident- be almost in the dark as to events of the first
ly to put him on his guard. In 447, in answer half of the 5th cent, in Spain. Idatius de-
to various documents from St. Turribius on scribes the entry of the Vandals, Alani, and
the Gallician heresies, Leo sent a long decretal Suevi into the Peninsula in Oct. 409, and the
letter to Spain to be circulated by him, urging two following years of indiscriminate pillage,^
'
the assembly of a national council, or at least and ruin before the division of the country by
of a Gallician synod, in which, by the efforts lot amongst the invaders.
of Turribius and of Idatius and Ceponius, The Chronicle altogether embraces 91 years.
" fratres vestri," a remedy might be devised On the chronology of the last five years and
for the prevailing disorder. Probably the synod on possible interpolations of certain chrono-
never actually met, for Idatius's Chronicle, logical notes by the copyist, see ed. De Ram,
which rarely omits any ecclesiastical news he p. 39, also Florez, iv. 310.
could give, does not mention it. The Fasti Idatiani were first attributed to
In the troubled times after the flight and Idatius by Sirmond, partly because in the
execution of Rekiar, Idatius fell a victim to ancient MS. from which he printed the Chron-
the disorders of the country. His capture at icle the Fasti followed immediately, and
Aquae Flaviae by Frumari (July 26, 460) was partly because he believed that there was
owing mostly, no doubt, to his importance as strong internal evidence for the Idatian
a leader and representative of the Roman authorship (Op. 1728, ii. 287). This opinion
population, but partly, perhaps, as Florez has been generally adopted, notably by Dr.
suggests, to the hatred of certain Gallician Mommsen (Corpus Inscr. Lat. i. 484). Florez
Priscillianist informers (their names are Latin ;
is an exception, but his grounds are extremely
cf. Chron. ad ann.) who had felt the weight slight (see Esp. Sagr. iv. 457, and Garzon's
of his authority. He was released in 3 months, answer, ed. De Ram, p. 41). The history of
and after his return to Chiaves lived at least the Fasti has now been cleared up with great
8 years under the Suevian kingdom which he learning and acuteness by Holder-Egger in the
had too hastily declared to be " destructum et Neiies Archiv der Gesellschaft fiir dltere Deutsche
finitum " in 456 (? " pene destructum," as Geschichtskunde, ii. pp. 39-71. His general
Isidore, his copyist in Hist. Suevorum, eod. conclusions are (i) that the Fasti Idatiani are
loc), but which took a new lease, on Frumari's one of two derivatives of certain consular
death (464), under Remismund. His Chron- Fasti put together at Constantinople in 4th
icle ends with 469, and he must have died before cent., the Chronicon Paschale (Migne, Patr.
474, the year of the emperor Leo's death, under Gk. xcii.) being the other. (2) That the
whom Isidore places that of Idatius (£s^. Sagr. common source of the Fasti and of the Chron.
iv. 303, ed. De Ram, pp. 15, 39). Pasch. was itself compiled at Constantinople

Chronicle. The prologue to the Chronicle, from older Roman Fasti, such as are still
composed apparently after its completion, preserved in the Chronographus of 354
at any rate in the extreme old age of its (Mommsen, op. cit. i. 483 ; Wattenbach,
author, gives a full account of its intention, Deutschlands Geschichtsquellen, p. 48), the
sources, and arrangement. It was intended notices peculiar to Constantinople beginning
to continue the Chronicle of Eusebius and from 330, when Byzantium became the
Jerome, Idatius including his own works in second capital of the empire. (3) That after
one vol. with theirs (ed. De Ram, p. 48, note 3, 390-395, when the Chron. Pasch. branches off
and p. 59, note 4), and he divides it into two from the Fasti Idatiani, a copy of the Con-
parts, the first starting from 379, where stantinople Fasti came westward, received
Jerome breaks off, and ending 427, when certain additions in Italy and then reached
Idatius was made bishop ; the second extend- Spain, where a Spanish reviser and continuator
ing from 427 to the end. In the first division gave them the shape under which we now
Sulpicius and Orosius seem to have been his know them as the Fasti Idatiani. That Ida-
main authorities, together with the works of tius the author of the Chronicle revised the
SS. Augustine and Jerome (Esp. Sagr. iv. 335, Fasti Holder-Egger does not believe, but is
356), and the lives and writings of certain inclined to hold that their agreement is best
contemporary bishops (John of Jerusalem, I.e. explained by the theory that Idatius used but
337, Paulinus of Beziers, ib., Paulinus of Nola, did. not compose the Fasti. His arguments
358, etc.). " Thenceforward" {i.e. from 427), on this point seem scarcely conclusive, and he
IGNATIUS IGNATIUS 509

is indeed prepared to admit that certain [Horn, in Luc. vol. 938) says, " I find it
iii.

trifling additions to and alterations in the well written in one of the epistles of a certain
Fasti were probably made by Idatius. For martyr, I mean Ignatius, 2nd bp. of Antioch
the latter use of the Fasti Idatiani, the East after Peter, who in the persecution fought with
Roman Fasti as the Ravenna annals are the beasts at Rome, that the virginity of Mary
West Roman Fasti (Wattenbach, i. 49), see escaped the prince of this world " (Ignat. ad
Holder-Egger's art. Die Chronik des Marcel- Eph. xix. i).
linus Comes und der Ostromischen Fasten, Eusebius, early in 4th cent., gives a full
Neues Archiv, etc. ii. 44. account which explains these fragmentary
The Chronicon Parvum Idatii is the work allusions and quotations. In his Chronicle he
of an unskilful abbreviator of the larger twice names Ignatius as 2nd bp. of Antioch
Chronicle, who adds a continuation to the time after the apostles in one case adding that he
;

of Justinian. It must not be confused with was martyred. In his Ecclesiastical History,
the excerpta from Idatius made under Charles besides less important notices of our saint and
the Great. of Polycarp, he relates (iii. 22, 37, 38, iv. 14,
Besides the references already given see 15) how Ignatius, whom he calls very cele-
Adolf Ebert, Allgemeine Gesch. der Litt. des brated among the Christians, was sent from
Mittelalters im Abendlande, i. 1874 Teuffel,
; Syria to Rome to be cast to the beasts for
Gesch. der Romischen Litt. 1875. [m.a.w.] Christ's sake. When journeying under guard
Ignatius (l), St. (called Theophorus), Oct. through Asia he addressed to the cities near
17, the 2nd bp. of Antioch [c. 70-c. 107), places of his sojourn exhortations and epistles.
between Evodius and Hero. He is sometimes Thus in Smyrna, the city of Polycarp, he wrote
reckoned the 3rd bishop, St. Peter being to Ephesus, Magnesia, and Tralles. He wrote
reckoned the first (Bosch, Pat. Ant. in Boll. to the Romans, begging them not to impede
Acta SS. Jul. iv. introd. p. 8 Le Quien, Or.
; his martyrdom. Of this epistle Eusebius
Chr. ii. 700). appends § v. at length. Then he tells how
The question of the life and writings of Ignatius, having left Smyrna and come to
Ignatius, including the connected subject of Troas, wrote thence to the Philadelphians and
the Ep. of Polycarp to the Philippians, has Smyrnaeans and to Polycarp. One sentence
been described by M. Renan as the most from Smyr. iii. Eusebius copies as containing
difficult in early Christian history next to a saying of Christ not otherwise handed down.
that of the fourth gospel. The Apostolical Constitutions, in their uninter-
I. About 165 Lucian in his satire de Morte polated form as known to us through the
Peregrini relates (cc. 14-41) that Peregrinus Syriac trans, of the Didascalia, in several
was made a prisoner in Syria. The Christians places coincide very strikingly with the
of Asia Minor sent messengers and money to shorter Greek or 7 Vossian epistles. An
him according to their usual custom when epistle which passes under the name of
persons were imprisoned for their faith. Athanasius, and which if not by him is by a
Peregrinus wrote letters to all the more contemporary writer, quotes a passage from
important cities, forwarding these by mes- ad Eph. vii. 2, as written by Ignatius, who
sengers whom he appointed {ix^'-po'''^v'')<^^) and after the apostles was bp. of Antioch and a
entitled J'e/cpa77eXoi'S and vepTepoopdjxovi. martyr of Christ. (See, as to the genuineness
The coincidence of this story with that of of this epistle, Cureton, Ixviii. Zahn, i. 578.)
;

Ignatius, as told afterwards by Eusebius, St. Basil (ed. Ben. ii. 598) quotes, without
would be alone a strong evidence of connexion. naming Ignatius, the familiar sentence from
The similarity of the expressions with the ad Eph. xix. r, concerning Satan's ignorance
irpi-zu xftpoTovrjaai TLva 8s dvvqaerai 6eo5p6fxos of the virginity of Mary. St. Jerome's testi-
KaXeladai of ad Pol. vii. would, if the words mony is dependent on that of Eusebius. St.
stood alone, make it almost certain that Chrysostom {Op. vol. ii. 592) has a homily on
Lucian was mimicking the words of the epistle. St. Ignatius which relates that he was ap-
These two probabilities lead us to believe that pointed by the apostles bp. of Antioch ; was
the composition was by one acquainted with sent for to Rome in a time of persecution to
the story and even some of the letters of be there judged instructed and admonished
;

Ignatius. (Renan, i. 38; Zahn, i. 517; Pearson, with wonderful power all the cities on the
i. 2 ;Denzinger, 85 Lightfoot, ii. See Author- way,
;
and Rome itself when he arrived was ;

ities at the foot of this art.) condemned and martyred in the Roman
Theophilus, bp. of Antioch (fl. before 167), theatre crying, "£70.' rue drjpioji' iKeu'Wf dvaifxriv :

has a coincidence with Ignat. ad Eph. xix. i, and his remains were transferred after death
where the virginity of Mary is said to have with great solemnity to Antioch. (Zahn [i.
been concealed from the devil. Irenaeus, 33-49] does not believe that the genuine
c. 180 {adv. Haer. iii. 3, 4), bears witness that writings of Chrysostom shew that he was
Polycarp wrote to the Philippians, and (v. 28) acquainted with the writings of Ignatius.
mentions how a Christian martyr said, " I am But see the other side powerfully argued by
the bread-corn of Christ, to be ground by the Pearson, i. 9 Denzinger, 90
;
Lipsius, ii.
;

teeth of beasts that I may be found pure 21.) Theodoret frequently cites the 7
bread " —
words found in Ignat. ad Rom. iv. i. Vossian epistles, and mentions Ignatius as
The passage of Irenaeus is quoted by Eusebius ordained by St. Peter and made the food of
(H. E. iii. 36) as a testimony to Ignatius. beasts for the testimony of Christ. Severus,
Origen, early in 3rd cent., Prol. in Cant. (Op. patriarch of Antioch (513-531), has a long
ed. Delarue, iii. 30), writes, " I remember also catalogue of sayings from Ignatius, in which
that one of the saints, by name Ignatius, said every one of the 7 epistles is laid under con-
of Christ, ' '

My love was crucified " words tribution. These are to be found in Syr. in
found in Ignat. ad Rom. vii. 2. Origen also Cureton, in Gk. in Zahn (ii. 352). Cureton
510 IGNATIUS IGNATIUS
furnishes also a large collection of Syriac untrustworthy information of Julius African-
fragments, in which passages taken from the us (Harnack, pp. 66 sqq.). But it is very
7 Vossian epistles are declared to have the improbable that Eusebius had no tradition
force of canons in the church. save through Africanus, or the latter no
II. We possess also a multitude of Acts of tradition save four names.
the martyrdom of St. Ignatius, which, if we The theory of Volkmar, which the author of
could accept them, would supply very par- Supernatural Religion (i. 268) regarded as
ticular accounts of his life and death. Of " demonstrated," was that the martyrdom of
these Ussher published 3 in whole or part : Ignatius happened not in Rome but in
one in Lat. from two related MSS. ; another Antioch, upon Dec. 20, 115 (on which day his
in Lat. from the Cottonian library a third
; feast was kept), in consequence of the excite-
in Gk. from a MS. at Oxford. The Bollandists ment produced by an earthquake a week
published a Latin martyrdom in the Acta SS. previously ; but it is now known from the
for Feb. i Cotelerius a Gk. one by Symeon
; ancient Syriac Menologion, published by
Metaphrastes. Ruinart, and afterwards Wright (Journ. Sac. Lit. Jan. 1866, p. 45), that
Jacobson (Pat. Ap. ii.), printed a Gk. MS. the feast was originally kept not upon Dec. 20,
from the Colbertine collection (MS. Colb.) ;
but upon Oct. 17. (Zahn, i. 33, and Light-
J. S. Assemani found a Syriac one which may foot, ii. 352, note §, are to be corrected in
be the same as that partly printed by Cureton accordance with this discovery.)
(i.). Aucher, and afterwards Petermann The other details in the martyrdoms and
(p. 496), published an Armenian one. Dressel elsewhere are but expansions from hints
printed a Gk. version of the loth cent. (MS. supposed to be found in the letters, of which
Vat.). The 9 are reducible to 5, possessing we find an instance in the long dialogue^-
each a certain independence. But of these MS. between Ignatius and Trajan upon the name
Colb. and MS. Vat. are by far the most valu- Qeotpdpos. There is no reason to suspect the
able, being completely independent, while the genuineness of this addition to the saint's
remaining versions are mixtures of these two. name. It is given untranslated in the 4th-
MS. Colb. (see Zahn, ii. p. 301) relates the cent. Syriac version. The interpolator found
condemnation of Ignatius by Trajan in An- it in his copy, for it stands in all his epistles
tioch, and incorporates the Ep. to the Romans. except that to Polycarp and in all the MSS. of
This MS. bears marks of interpolation, and its the shorter translation, both Greek and Latin.
chief value lies in its incorporation of the Ep. The 4th-cent. writers, regarding it as a title of
to the Romans. The other epistles the author honour, do not quote it ; in the 6th it came to
of the MS. has not read carefully. We con- be regarded as a name.
clude that this martyrdom, written in the 4th The tradition that Ignatius was martyred
cent., assumed its present form after the first at Rome can be traced higher than the records
half of the 5th. of Eusebius and Origen. The designation of
MS. Vat. (Zahn, ii. 307) omits all judicial world-famed, which Eusebius gives him,
proceedings in Antioch. Ignatius is sent for shews the general tradition and the words
;

by Trajan to Rome, as a teacher dangerous to of Origen are to the same effect. The testi-
the state an argument takes place before the mony of Irenaeus, which Eusebius adduces
;

senate between the emperor and the saint ;


as perfectly agreeing with the tradition known
the lions kill him, but leave the body un- to him, dates but 70 years after the fact.
touched, and it remains as a sacred deposit at True, these expressions come from writers who
Rome. Thus MS. Vat. seems to have arisen knew the epistles but the mere existence of
;

on the basis of an account of the journey and the epistles at such a date, even if they were
death of the saint, extant at the end of the spurious, would be sufficient proof of the
4th cent. On the whole, the martyrdoms are existence of the tradition and it is impossible
;

late and untrustworthy compositions, wholly that such a story should have arisen so soon
useless as materials for determining the after Trajan, if it had contradicted known
question of the epistles ; we are thrown back facts or prevalent customs of his reign.
on Eusebius. Eusebius clearly wrote with the collection
III. Eusebius in the Chronicle (ed. Schone, ii. of letters before him, and knew of no other
152, 158, 162) omits (contrary to his custom) collection besides the 7 he mentions. These
the durations of the episcopates of Antioch. he arranges according to place and time of
We can, therefore, place Ignatius's death any writing, gives his quotation from Romans as
time between Ab. 2123, Traj. 10, and 2132, out of " the Epistles," and cites Irenaeus's
Traj. 19. In H. E. iii. 22, Eusebius, in a quotation from Ignatius, as proof of that
general way, makes the episcopates of Symeon writer's knowledge of them, although Irenaeus
and Ignatius contemporary with the first did not mention the author's name.
years of Trajan and the last of St. John and IV. The gradual presentation of the various
(iii. 36) with Polycarp and Papias. We may Ignatian documents to the modern world is
date his epistles, journey, and death in any related in the introduction to Cureton's Corpus
year from 105 to 117. Funk fixes it at 107. Ignaiianum and is briefly as follows. Late in
In 1878 Harnack published a tract (Die the 15th and in the beginningof thei6th cents.
Zeit des Ign. Leipz.) impugning the tradition 12 epistles, purporting to be by Ignatius,
that Ignatius was martyred under Trajan. were given to the world, first in Latin trans-
The argument rests upon the acts of the lations, then in the original Greek, together
martyrdom being proved by Zahn, with the with three others manifestly spurious, which
general assent of all his critics, to be untrust- existed in Latin alone. The epistles which
worthy ; the date of the saint's death thus bear non-Eusebian titles were soon suspected
resting wholly on the testimony of Eusebius, of spuriousness, and it was proved that the
who shews that he had no data except the text of the Eusebian, as then known, was
IGNATIUS IGNATIUS 511

interpolated. Ussher first restored the genu- are undoubtedly the work of the same hand
ine text by means of a Latin translation which which interpolated the others. On the other
he discovered, and his arguments (except as hand, the interpolation cannot have been
to his doubt whether Ignatius wrote separately before 325, or Eusebius would have cited or
to Polycarp) were confirmed by Vossius's alluded to it ; moreover, it shews undoubted
publication of the Medicean MS. Thence- marks of dependence on his history. The
forward we have had the longer and the period of the interpolator is thus fixed at the
shorter (or Vossian) recensions, the former latter part of the 4th cent. His doctrine, as
containing the 7 Eusebian epistles in a longer Ussher shewed (p. 221), is stark Arianism.
text and also epistles of Mary of Castabala to Several names in Pseudo-Ignatius are bor-
Ignatius, with his reply, of Ignatius to the rowed from the period a.d. 360 to 380 (Philost.
Tarsians, Philippians, Antiochenes, and Hero, iii. 15 Theod. i. 5, v. 7
; ; Socr. iii. 25, iv.
his successor ; the Vossian comprising only 12). The titles of the new letters are also
the Eusebian letters and those in a shorter easily accounted for in the same period.
text. The longer recension has had few Pseudo-Ignatius interests himself against the
defenders, while the shorter had many and Quartodecimans ;
proving that they must
early assailants, moved especially by its have been still strong when he wrote, which
support of episcopacy. Of these Daille was was not the case at the conclusion of the 4th
perhaps the ablest, but he was sufficiently cent. These oppositions point to the period
answered by bp. Pearson. The genuineness 360-380. Thus all historical indications point
of the longer recension as a whole is now to the 2nd half of the 4th cent, as the date
generally denied, the time and method of its of the interpolations.
interpolations and additions being the only Zahn conjectures the interpolator to have
points for consideration. been Acacius, the scholar, biographer, and
Cureton in 1839 transcribed from Syriac successor of Eusebius at Caesarea, who, as
MSS. in the Brit. Mus. a fragment of the Sozomen (iv. 23) informs us, was regarded as
martyrdom of Ignatius and of the Ep. to the heir to the learning as well as the position of
Romans therein contained. In 1847 he dis- that divine. The roughness of the known
covered, among Syriac MSS. acquired in the character of Acacius (c. 360) agrees with the
meantime, three epistles of Ignatius, viz. to abusiveness of Pseudo-Ignatius.
Polycarp, to the Ephesians, and to the Different Syriac translations of Greek works
Romans, transcribed in the 6th or 7th cent. give similar citations from Ignatius in some-
These epistles are in a form considerably what varying language probably because the
;

shorter even than the shorter recension of authors cited from memory an existing Syriac
the earlier time. Cureton believed this the version. Zahn contends that the Armenian
sole genuine text, and argued the point very version came from the one Syriac translation
ably, but with a confidence which in its in the 5th cent., and from it the extracts were
contrast with the present state of belief should taken, perhaps somewhat later, which Cureton
be a warning to all who are tempted to be too mistook for the original epistles. The con-
positive on this difiicult controversy. Man}' nexion in which Cureton's epistles were found
scholars at the time accepted the Curetonian is that of a series of extracts from Fathers
theory, and Bunsen wrote a voluminous work whose remaining works are not to be supposed
in its defence. The Armenian version, first rendered doubtful by their absence from this
printed, though very incorrectly, in 1783, is Syriac MS., and Petermann (xxi.) has cor-
mentioned by Cureton, who failed to perceive rected Bunsen's supposition that the conclud-
the effect its testimony was to have upon his ing words of the MS. imply that the epistles of
own argument. The correct publication and Ignatius, as known to the writer, were all
due estimate of the Armenian version are due comprised in what he copied. Zahn (pp. 199,
to Petermann. According to him, it was 200) compares the Syriac extracts numbered
rendered out of Syriac in the 5th cent., and i. and ii. in Corp. Ignat., taken as they were,
agrees with Ussher's Latin MS. in that, while beyond doubt, from the existing Syriac
it contains several post-Eusebian epistles translation, with S. Cur. (i.e. Cureton's Syriac
united with the Eusebian, the latter are free Epp.) ; and apparently succeeds in making
frorn any systematic interpolations such as out that the same translator, whose work is
are in the longer recension. presented in a fragmentary form in S. Cur.,
y. Date of the Longer Recension. — The latest meets us in these extracts. E.g. the expres-
ancient writer who cites only the Eusebian sion dripioixaxelv, and many other peculiar
epistles in the uninterpolated text is the monk words, are similarly rendered ;though no. i.
Antonius in the early part of the 7th cent. seems sometimes to preserve better the text
(Cureton, p. 176; Zahn, ii. 350). Severus of from which it was copied. We
might cull
Antioch, 6th cent. (Cureton, 212 ; Zahn, 352) from S. Cur. itself certain proofs that it was
cites all the Eusebian epistles in a text free not the original. Moreover, there are
from interpolations. certain passages in it which are plainly not
We cannot doubt that in Ussher's MS. and complete in themselves. It is surely a
in the Armenian translation we have (minute quite sufficient motive to suppose that the
textual criticism apart) the 7 epistles as the epitomator intended to make one of those
Fathers from Eusebius to Severus of Antioch selections of the best parts of a good work,
and as the interpolator had them. The argu- which in all ages have been practised upon
ments of Ussher upon this point remain un- the most eminent writers without disrespect.
answered. But the Armenian, with the Hefele (see Denzinger, pp. 8, 196) thinks he
Syriac translation from which it sprang, can discern the practical ascetic purpose of the
brings back the composition of the six ad- selection, and we observe that very naturally
ditional epistles to a. d. 400 at latest; andthese the abbreviator begins each epistle with a
!

512 IGNATIUS IGNATIUS


design of taking all that is most edifying
; but land and sea " {ad Rom. v.) may easily refer
his resolution or his space fails him before the to a voyage from Seleucia to some Cilician
end, when he abridges far more than at the port, and thence by road. The ordinary way
beginning. His form of Ephesians has alone from Antioch to Ephesus was by land, and
an uniform character of epitome from the first; Ignatius calls the messenger to be sent by the
but a number of personal names plainly fit Smyrnaeans to Antioch Oeo5p6/J.os {Pol. vii.).
to be omitted come very early. Denzinger Ignatius did not, as was usual, pass through
powerfully urges (pp. 77 seq.) the certainty that Magnesia and Ephesus, but left the great road
the Monophysites would have complained at Sardis and came by Laodicea, Hierapolis,
when the seven epistles were quoted against Philadelphia, and perhaps Colossae, as he had
them had these been spurious, and he and certainly visited Philadelphia and met there
Uhlhorn have fully shewn how entirely the the false teachers from Ephesus (Zahn, 258
epitomator is committed to any doctrines in seq. also 266 seq.). The churches written to
the shorter recension which can be found were not chosen at random, but were those
difficult. What a useless and objectless task which had shewn their love by sending mes-
then would any one have in interpolating and sengers to him. The replies were thus, primarily,
extending Cureton's three into the seven letters of thanks, quite naturally extending
Upon the whole case we can pronounce with into admonitions.
much confidence that the Curetonian theory We find him in the enjoyment of much
is never likely to revive. freedom on his journey, though chained to a
VI. The Ep. to the Romans differs from the soldier. In Philadelphia he preaches, not in
other six Eusebian letters in being used by a church, but in a large assembly of Christians;
some authors who use no others and omitted in Smyrna he has intercourse with the Chrisv
by some who cite the others. Zahn suggests tians there and with messengers of other
that it did not at first belong to the collection, churches. He has much speech with the
but was propounded by itself, with or without bishops concerning the state of the churches.
a martyrdom. This seems supported by the That of Ephesus he treats with special respect,
fact that it escaped the interpolations which and anticipates writing a second letter {ad
the other epistles suffered at the hand, prob- Eph. XX.) ; that of Tralles he addresses in a
ably, of Acacius. markedly' different manner {ad. Tr. 2, 12).
VII. The circumstances of the journey and He must, therefore, have had time in Smyrna
martyrdom of Ignatius, gathered from the to acquaint himself with the condition of the
seven epistles and from that of Polycarp, are neighbouring churches. If the writing of
as follows :He suffers under a merely local epistles under the circumstances of his cap-
persecution. It is in progress at Antioch tivity should cause surprise, it must be
while he is in Smyrna, whence he writes to the remembered that they are only short letters,
Romans, Ephesians, Magnesians, and Tral- not books. The expression /St/^XiSiov, which
lians. But Rome, Magnesia (xii.), and in Eph. XX. he applies to his intended second
Ephesus (xii.) are at peace, and in Troas he missive, is often applied to letters. He dic-
learns that peace is restored to the church in tated to a Christian, and thus might, as
Antioch. Of the local causes of this Antioch- Pearson remarks, have finished one of the
ene persecution we are ignorant, but it is not shorter letters in an hour, the longest in
in the least difficult to credit. The imagined three. Perpetua and Saturus wrote in prison
meeting of the emperor and the saint is not narratives as long as the epistles of Ignatius
found in the epistles it is " the world " under {Acta SS. Perp. et Pel. Ruinart). A ten days'
;

whose enmity the church is there said to suffer. sojourn would amplj^ meet the necessities of
All now recognize that, according to the the case ; and there is nothing in the treat-
testimony of the letters, Ignatius has been ment to which the letters witness inconsistent
condemned in Antioch to death, and journeys with that used to other Christian prisoners,
with death by exposure to the beasts as the e.g. St. Paul. The numberless libelli pacts,
settled fate before him. He deprecates inter- written by martyrs in prison, and the celebra-
position of the church at Rome (quite powerful tions of the holy mysteries there with their
enough at the end of the ist cent, to be con- friends, shew that the liberty given Ignatius was
ceivably successful in such a movement) for not extraordinary ; especially as the word
the remission of a sentence already delivered. eiifpyerot'/jifvoi which he applies to his guard
The supposition of Hilgenfeld (i. 200) that points, doubtless, to money given them by the
prayer to God for his martyrdom, or abstin- Christians. Ignatius is always eager to
ence from prayer against it, is what he asks of know more Christians and to interest them in
the Romans seems quite inadmissible, and we each other. The news of the cessation of
could not conceive him so assured of the persecution in Antioch stirs him to urge
approach of death if the sentence had not Polycarp to take an interest in that church.
been already pronounced. The right of ap- The great idea of the Catholic church is at work
peal to the emperor was recognized, and could in him. He does not deny that his request
be made without the consent of the criminal, that messengers should be sent to Antioch is
but not if the sentence had proceeded from the an unusual one, but dwells upon the great
emperor himself. Thus the Colbertine Mar- benefit which will result {Pol. 7; Sm. 11;
tyrdom, which makes Trajan the judge at Phil. 10). But when Polj'carp, a few weeks
Antioch, contradicts the epistles no less than or months afterwards, writes to the Philip-
the Vatican which puts off the process to pians, the messenger had not yet been sent.
Rome. MS. Colb. brings Ignatius by sea to Ignatius had but lately passed through
Smyrna ; but Eusebius, who had read the Phihppi, by the Via Egnatia to Neapolis.
epistles, supposes the journey to be by land, The Philippians immediately after wrote to
and he is clearly right. The journey " by Polycarp, and forwarded a message to the
IGNATIUS IGNATIUS 513
Antiochenes, expecting to be in time to catch side the limits of the cities held in the Ignatian
the messenger for Antioch before his depar church order to the bishops of the cities. No
ture. Ignatius had plainly been suggesting provision appears for episcopal rule over
the same thoughts to them as to Polycarp country congregations whose pastors are

;

and this would be plainer still if the reading not in the " presbytery " an uncommon
in Eus. H. E. iii. 36, 14 {iypaxj/aTe /xoi Kal v/jiels expression in antiquity, but used 13 times by
Kai 'lyvdnos) were more sure, and thus a Ignatius.
second letter had been received by Polycarp The duties the epistles ascribe to bishops are
from Ignatius. But this second epistle, if very similar to those which St. Paul (Acts, xx.)
written, has been lost. Polycarp wrote lays upon presbyters. Only in one place {Pol.
immediately after receiving the epistle of the 5) do they speak of the preaching of the
Philippians. He speaks of the death of bishop ; and it is not peculiar to him, but
Ignatius, knowing that the sentence in Antioch common with the presbyters. The deacons
made it certain probably knowing also the
;
have duties wholly distinct, concerned with
date of the games at which he was to die. But the meat and drink given to the poor and with
he is not acquainted with any particulars, the distribution of the mysteries of the Eu-
since he asks for news concerning the martyr charist. But the presbyters are very closely
and those with him {Ep. Pol. xiii.), and at the united with the bishop. They are not his
request of the Philippians forwards all the vicars, but his avvedpiov (Phil. 8 Pol. 7), and
;

epistles of Ignatius to which he had access, yet the bishop is by no means a mere president
viz. those to the Asiatic churches but not all
;
of the college of presbyters. Zahn shews that
that he knew to have been written. even though the development of episcopacy
yill. The chief difficulty in accepting the were thought to have taken place through the
epistles as genuine has always arisen from the elevation of one of a college to a presidency
form of church government which they record in those parts where it did not exist in the end
as existing and support with great emphasis. of the ist cent., it would still be impossible to
They display the threefold ministry estab- hold this of Asia. The youth of many of the
lished in Asia Minor and Syria, and the terms earliest Asiatic bishops puts this theory en-
EiriaKOTTos and irpecrjivTepos are applied to tirely out of the question there. Whatever
perfectly distinct orders —
a state of things and
use of language which are argued to be wholly
development is implied in the passage from
the state of things represented in I. Pet. and
mcompatible with a date early in the 2nd I. Tim. to organized episcopacv, took place,
cent. Hence Daille derived his " palmary according to the testimony of all records both
argument " (c. xxvi.,answeredby Pears. ii. 13)'. of Scripture and tradition, in the 30 years
It is noteworthy that the testimony of the between the death of St. Paul and the time of
epistles on this point extends no further than Domitian, had Asia Minor for its centre, and
the localities named. To the Romans Igna- was conducted under the influence of St. John
tius only once names the office of a bishop, and and apostolic men from Palestine, in which
that in reference to himself and in Poly-
;
country Jerusalem offers the records of a
carp's Ep. to the Philippians there is no succession of bishops more trustworthy per-
mention of any bishop, while the deacons and haps than that of any other see. Now the
presbyters are addressed at considerable Syrian churches were from the first in closest
length. The standpoint of the epistles is union with Palestine. Thus all the most un-
perfectly consistent with the supposition that doubted records of episcopacy in the sub-
episcopacy existing from the times of the apostolic age centre in the very quarters
apostles in Asia Minor and Syria and believed in \vhich our epistles exhibit it, a weighty
by the Christians there to be a divinely or- coincidence in determining their authenticity.
dained institution, made its way gradually It is certainly somewhat startling to those
into other parts of the church, and that those accustomed to regard bishops as the successors
who most valued it might yet know that it of the apostles that Ignatius everywhere
did not exist in churches to which they wrote, speaks of the position of the apostles as cor-
or not be assured that it did, and might feel responding to that of the existing presbyters,
it no part of their duty to enter upon while the prototype of the bishop is not the
a con-
troversy concerning it. apostles, but the Lord Himself. It would be
Zahn fairly observes that thereis noattempt, hasty, however, to infer that Ignatius denied
even in those epistles where obedience to the that the office and authority of the apostles
bishop is most urged, to recommend it in was represented and historically succeeded
opposition to other forms of church govern- by that of the bishops. The state of things
ment. Not only is the supposition that visibly displayed when the Lord and His
Ignatius was introducing episcopacy utterly apostles were on earth is for Ignatius the type
out of the question, but none of the epistles of church order for all time. (See Bp. Harold
bear the slightest trace of any recent intro- Browne, The Strife and the Victory, 1872,
duction of it in the places in which it exists. p. 62.) If, however, the epistles had been
The presbyterate is everywhere identified forged to support episcopacy, they would not
with the episcopate in its claims to obedience, have omitted an argument of such weight
and those who resist the one resist the other. as the apostolical authority and succession.
It is extremely hard to reconcile these char- The duty of submission is with Ignatius the
acteristics with the supposition that the letters first call upon each member of the church, and
were forged to introduce the rule of bishops exhortations to personal holiness go hand in
or to uplift it to an unprecedented position hand with admonitions to unity and obedience.
m order to resist the assaults of heresy. The word inroTdaaiadai denotes the duty of
A good deal of uncertainty remains as to the all, not (be it marked) towards the bishop
relations which the smaller congregations out- alone, but towards authority in all its steps

33
514 IGNATI0S IGNATIUS
(Mgn. 13 and 7). But the bishop represents the gifts of are plainly those who deny rrjP
God
the principle of unity in the church. evxo.pi-ffTiai' (xdpKa elvai tov ffwrf/poi rj/xwv 'lr]<Tod
Sprintzl ingeniously argues (p. 67) that the X.pi<TTou. Christians observed the Lord's Day,
supremacy of the bp. of Rome is taught by not the Jewish Sabbath (Mgn. 8, 9).
Ignatius, on the ground that, first, he teaches X. As to the theology of the epistles,
the supremacy of the Roman church over there have been great differences of opinion.
others {Rom. prooem.), and secondly, the The more significant theological statements
supremacy of the bishop in every church. are uncontroversial, though called out by
But the explanation of the passage in Romans heresies to which the writer opposes his con-
is very doubtful, and the marked omission of ception of the nature of Christ. The origin-
any niention of the bp. of Rome seems incon- ality and reality of the revelation in Christ is
sistent with any supremacy apart from the the great point with him. Hence follows the
natural position of his church. unreasonableness of Judaizing, which he some-
The emphatic terms in which these letters times presses in terms apparently inconsistent
propose the bishop as the representative of with the recognition of Jewish Christians as
Christ have always presented a stumbling- really believers. But probably, like St. Paul,
block to many minds, even apart from the he is treating the question from the Gentile
question of date. But before we pronounce standpoint alone. Prophets and the law are
these expressions exaggerated, we must worthy of all honour in Christ irdura 6/xoD
;

remember that obedience to the bishop is KoKd icFTiv idv ev dydirrj iri.arevrjTe. The
valued by the writer for the sake of unity,
prophets were Christians in spirit, and Christ
while unity is for him the only fence against raised them from the dead (Mgn. 9). They>^
the heresy to which small and disunited were believers in Christ yea, even the angels
bodies are subject (Phil. 4, 8 ; Mgn. i, etc). must believe in His blood (Sm. 6). But for
;

Identification of the position of the church


this practical and real salvation finding its
ruler with that of the Lord would be more
expression in history the heretics would sub-
easy to a writer of an age very close to Christ stitute a shadowy representation of religious
than to one of later date. When the divine notions in a merely apparent and unreal life of
nature of the Lord and His elevation in heaven Christ. Therefore we find Ignatius constantly
came through lapse of time to overshadow the word dXrjdQs to his records of the
remembrance of His life on earth, it seemed a adding the 'Ei' crapKiis an
superhuman claim on the part of any office to acts of Christ (Sw. 3, 4; Tr. 10).
Blood is named with
say that it represented Him. But it would equivalent phrase. The
naturally be otherwise when the recollection or instead of the Flesh to
shew that the Lord
of His human intercourse with men was fresh ;
had in death the same bodily constitution
of which the faithful partake in
for why should not men represent one so truly as in life,
Christ was the
man ? Thus the strong expressions may the Eucharist. Being real flesh, of God in the
really be a mark of early date. New Man, and the revelation
IX. In Sw. 8 is first found the phrase Catholic earth (Eph. 18). He is an eternal Person, but


church an expression pronounced by Lipsius He is God's Son, as born of Mary and
When the writer speaks of an outcoming of
of God.

(iii.) to prove of itself the later date of the


epistles. Such a decision is very precarious, Christ from God, he means the Incarnation,
even if, with Lipsius, we reject the testimony and not anything previous. Though
he uses
of the Martyrdom of Polycarp to the use of the the epithet diStos with Aoyos, yet he does not
expression. Sprintzl remarks that the phrase seem to mean that it is as A670S that the Lord
" Where Jesus Christ is, there is the Catholic is eternal. It is as incarnate and as man that
church " naturally follows upon the preceding He is the Logos of God. His twofold nature
statement of the relation of the bishop to the furnishes the explanation of the opposite
particular church : what the bishop is to it, attributes ascribed to Him (Eph. 7 ;Pol. 3).
that Christ is to the Catholic church at large. Baur and Lipsius have discovered Patripas-
Thus to Ignatius the church of each place is a sianism in the last-quoted passage. But this
miniature of the church at large (Sm. 8) and accusation is inconsistent with all the rest of
its unity is guarded by all the sanctions of the the epistles, and seems, indeed, to have been
Christian faith. The one faith is, in the since abandoned by Lipsius. In opposition
epistles, the bond of the church. " The to Baur's assertion that except in one suspect-
gospel " is that which the apostles proclaimed ed place there is no mention of Christ as Son
{Phil. 5) ; not the four written gospels, but of God, Zahn finds himself able to enumerate
the substance of the message of salvation. 29 such cases. The epistles lay vast stress
We find in the epistles the germ of the great upon the Godhead of the Lord ;
it is because
ideas of worship afterwards developed in the of this that His birth is the entrance of the
church. The altar-idea and the temple-idea New Man, and His death the resurrection of
as applied to the church are there {Eph. 5 the faithful. To them He stands in a personal
;

Mgn. 7 ; Phil. 4). The Eucharist holds its and practical relation, which makes Him their
commanding place {Rom. 7 ; Phil. 4, and God. His present invisible relation to them
probably Eph. 5), though what its rites were involves an increase of the activity of His
at this early period is hard to answer from the Godhead, and of its revelation to men (ad
letters. 'A7d7rT; {Sm. 8) is applied to the Rom.
3; ad Eph. 15); but He was always
Eucharist, and d7airav {Sm. 7) means to God. Therefore Ignatius can speak of the
celebrate it. In Ignatian phraseology Ei^xap- blood and of the suffering of God (Eph. 1 ;

la-Tia is used where the blessing of Holy Com- Rom. 6). The rpia fj-vo-Trjpia Kpavyijs, the
munion is denoted, 'A7d7r7; means the whole three mysteries loudest in proclamation of
service of which the consecration is only a truth to those who can hear, are the Incarna-
moment. In Sm. 7 those who speak against tion, Birth, and Death of Christ, hid in their
;

IGNATIUS IGNATIUS 516

real significance from the devil and from the not for his death, but for his due preparation
unbelieving. The terms Son and A6709 are [Eph. 21 Mgn. 14
; Tr. 12, 13).
; For an
not applied to express the relations of the interesting summary of the moral aspect of
Divine Persons. Ignatius is content to main- the Ignatian epistles in respect to the person-
tain on the one hand the unity of God, on ality of the writer and to the ideal which his
the other the eternal personality of Christ. teaching presents, see Sprintzl, pp. 244 sqq.
XI. The question what special heresies are XIII. The great majority of critics, whether
denounced in the epistles possesses, in relation adverse to the genuineness of the epistles or
to their date, an importance scarcely below not, have recognized that the seven epistles
that of episcopacy. All, except Romans, professing to be of Ignatius, as shewn by the
contain warnings against heresy, and the individuality of the author there displayed,
exhortations to unity and submission to and the one of Polycarp, form an indivisible
authority derive their urgency from this whole. Romans, indeed, is the brightest and
danger. It was long a question whether two most interesting of the letters. This is be-
forms of heresy. Judaic and Docetic, or only cause its chief subject is his personal eagerness
one, Judaeo-docetic, were aimed at. But for martyrdom he is writing to the place
;

already in 1856, despite the arguments of where he expects to suffer, and to people who
Hilgenfeld (i. 230), it appeared to Lipsius (i. can help or hinder his object.
31) that the question was decided in the latter The Ep. of Polycarp contains a witness for
sense. The heretics were wandering teachers, the whole body of epistles, which (if it be
ever seeking proselytes {Eph. 7), and all the genuine) renders almost all others superfluous ;

denunciations of heresy are directed against since it mentions letters written to Smyrna by
that mixture of Judaism with Gnosticism, Ignatius, and by Polycarp collected and sent
represented by some whom Ignatius met in his to Philippi and intimates the existence of
;

journey {I^Ign. 8, 10, 11 Tr. 9; Sm. i). The


;
others. Thus those who believe the Ignatian
idea of Ritschl {Entst. der altk. Kirche, p. 580) letters to be a production late in the 2nd cent,
that they were Montanist teachers met with are forced to consider the Ep. of Polycarp a
little favour. fraud also, in whole or in part. For its satis-
Cureton and others have thought to find factory defence see Lightfoot, Cont. Rev. 1875.
direct allusions to the teaching of Valentinus With it we may consider the genuineness of the
in the epistles (but see Pearson II. vi.). But Ignatian epistles proved. For a forger late in
the allusion A670S airh Zty^s wpoeXdtibv (Mgn. the 2nd cent., it would have been impossible to
8) is not applicable to Valentinus. avoid mentioning Polycarp's connexion with
Basilides is probably early enough, and the apostles, or alluding to the epistles to the
disciples of his might have been wandering in seven Asiatic churches in Revelation they are ;

Asia Minor ; Cerinthus too was of this age. never mentioned. In all historical fictions of
I. and II. John contain warnings against antiquity, reiterated pains are taken to make
Docetism, which Polycarp {Ep. 7) applies to the facts to be maintained understood. In
the heretics of his own time, which was also Ignatius they are hard to reach the writer is
;

that of Ignatius. Of all the heretics whom not thinking of readers who have all to learn
Bunsen and others have supposed the epistles from him. Lastly, no ancient fiction has
to denounce, Saturninus alone can be proved succeeded in individualizing character to the
to have held the doctrines they condemn. degree here displayed e.g. in the picture of
;

XII. From the epistles, as Hilgenfeld (i. the false teachers. The improbabilities on
225-226) truly remarks, different critics, which the author of Supernatural Religion, and
according to their bias, have derived in some even, thoughlessdecidedly,Hilgenfeld(i7), rely
cases the very highest, and in some the very to prove the whole story an undoubted fabrica-
poorest, notion of the writer's character. The tion, are recognized by M. Renan as established
letters are indeed more characteristic than any facts, even though he does not believe that the
we have between St. Paul and the great epistles we possess are those to which the story
Fathers of the 4th cent. but they give no
;
refers. Finally, by the great work of Bp. Light-
record of the writer's surroundings or of his foot the genuinenessofthesevenVossian epistles
ways in his diocese when the times were quiet. may be regarded as completely established.
His name is Latin his style very Semitic.
;
The Epp. of Ignatius in the longer and shorter
He had not seen the Lord or the apostles, and recensions and the Syr. version were in Patr.
was not, as MS. Colb. makes him, a fellow-pupil Apost. ed. G. Jacobson (Clar. Press); and a
with Polycarp of St. John. It is perhaps trans, of the Epp. together with the Martyr-
somewhat precarious to infer with Zahn, from dom and spurious Epp. are in the Ante-Nic.
his strong terms of self-reproach (Eph. 21 Lib.
Mgn. 14), that he had led an un-Christian or
;


A uthorities. Ussher, Dissertatio de Ig. et Pol.
anti-Christian life in early years. His longing (1644), in Works by Elrington, vii. 87-295;
for death is extreme, but is really for life under Joannis Dallaei, de Scriptis quae sub Dion.
another and better form. We
do not know Areop. et Ig. Ant. nominibus circumferuntur,
that he courted martyrdom before his judges, lib. (Genev. 1666); Pearson, Vindiciae Igna-
ii.

since we only meet him after he has been con- tianae (ed. nov. Oxf. 1852) Zahn, i. Ignatius
;

demned and is well used to the idea. All his von Antiochien, p. 629 (Gotha, 1873), ii.
exhortations have the one burden and object, Patrum Apostolicorum Opera, fasc. ii. (Lips.
closer union with Christ. He bids others seek, 1876) Hilgenfeld, i. Die apostolischen Vdter
;

and seeks himself, that union in permanence (Halle, 1853), ii.in his Zeitsch. i874,pp.96seq.
and perfection which the Holy Eucharist gives Lightfoot, i. in Phil. pp. 208-210, ii. in Cont.
here in part. He does not imagine death in Rev. (Feb. 1875) Petermann, S./gn.£/>. (Lips.
;

itself to have any value {Rom. 4 Tr. 3, 4 ; ; 1849) Harnack, Die Zeitdes Ignatius (Leipz.
;

Eph. 12 ; Sm. 4). The prayers he asks are 1878) Cureton, Corpus Ignatianum (Lond.
;
516 INNOCENTIUS I. INNOCENTIUS I.

1849); Denzinger, Ueber die Aechtheit der Ign. divided between the two sons of TheodosiuS,
Briefe (Wiirzburg, 1849); Renan, i. Les Arcadius and Honorius the latter, now 18
;

Evangiles (Paris, 1877), ii. in Journal des years of age, under the control of the great
Savants (1874) Uhlhorn, i. in Zeitschrift fiir
;
general Stilicho, ruling in the West. Two
hist. Theol. (1851,283), ii. in Herzogs Encvc; years after Innocent's accession (a.d. 404) he
Funk, Op. Pat. Ap. (ed. 5, Tiibing. 1878). fixed his residence at Ravenna.
Cureton {Corp. Ign.) or (better still, except I. West, (i) Illyria. — Immediately after
for Syriac scholars) Zahn (ii.) will furnish the Innocent wrote to Anysius, bp. of
his election
student with all the documents and ancient Thessalonica, informing him of the event and
testimonies. The special treatise of Zahn on giving him the oversight of the churches of
Ignatius is, as Bp. Lightfoot remarks, little eastern Illyria. The prefecture of Illyria had
known in England, and is of an exhaustive been dismembered since 388, the Eastern part,
character. The reader will understand that, including Dacia and Macedonia, being assigned
while we have not hesitated to dissent from it to the Eastern empire, but popes Damasus and
where necessary, we have freely availed our- Siricius had continued to claim ecclesiastical
selves of its pages. The Epistles of Ignatius jurisdiction over the separated portion,
have been pub. in a cheap trans, by J. R. delegating their authority to the bishops of
Srawley (S.P.C.K. 2 vols.) [r.t.s.] Thessalonica. Innocent thus made no new
InnocentiUS (12) I., bp. of Rome, after claim, nor did he hereby assert any authority
Anastasius, from May 402, to Mar. 12, 417. over the East generally (Innoc. Ep. i; Galland.
The circumstances of his time and the Bibl. Patr.). When Rufus, some years after,
character and talents of Innocent render his succeeded Anysius as bp. of Thessalonica, a
pontificate important. Christianity had now letter was at once sent to him, reversing the .

for nearly a century been the religion of the vicariate commission, defining its extent, and
emperors ;
paganism was fast becoming a reminding him that his jurisdiction was
system of the past the capture of Rome by derived from the favour of the apostolic see
;

Alaric during his pontificate, regarded as the only. In 414 we find Innocent exercising
divine judgment on the heathen city and authority of a summary kind, without the
causing the dispersion and ruin of the remains intervention of the bp. of Thessalonica, in
of the heathen nobility, completed the down- East Illyria. The bishops of Macedonia had
full of the ancient order. With the ascend- sent him a synodal letter, desiring directions
ancy of the church had grown that of the as to (i) Whether persons ordained by one
:

hierarchy, and especially of the head of that Bonosus, a deceased heretical bishop, might
hierarchy in the West, the Roman bishop. be admitted to the priesthood. (2) Whether
The need of centres of unity and seats of au- persons who had married widows might be
thority to keep the church together amid ordained and made bishops, for which allow-
doctrinal conflicts ;the power and importance ance they pleaded the custom of their church.
hence accruing to the patriarchal sees, and (3) They had asked leave to raise to the
especially to Rome as the one great patriarch- episcopate one Photinus, who had been con-
ate of the West, the see of the old seat of demned by Innocent's predecessors, and to
empire and the only Western one that claimed depose a deacon called Eustatius. Some at
apostolic origin ; the view now generally re- least of these questions had already been
ceived of the bp. of Rome as the successor of decided by Innocent, for he expresses surprise
the prince of the apostles ;the removal of the and displeasure at their being again mooted.
seat of empire to Constantinople, leaving the He then authoritatively decides them. Those
pope, when there was but one emperor, the sole who had married widows he debars from
Western potentate, and when there were two, ordination, citing the prohibition of such
as in Innocent's time, the fixing of the imperial marriages to the high-priest under the Mosaic
residence at Ravenna instead of Rome, — such law. Those ordained by Bonosus are debarred
were among the causes of the aggrandizement the priesthood by the law of the Roman church
of the I^oman see. The Western church had {lex nostrae ecclesiae), which admitted to lay
been comparatively free from the controver- communion persons baptized by heretics, but
sies which had divided the East, nor had did not recognize their orders. The Nicene
the popes taken much personal part in them ;
canon about the Novatianists, he says, applied
but they had almost invariably supported to them only, and the condonation by Anysius
the orthodox cause, received and protected the had only been a temporary expedient. The
orthodox under persecution, and, after watch- question whether those who had married one
ing with quiet dignity the Eastern struggle, wife before and another after baptism were
had accepted and confirmed the decisions of to be accounted deuterogamists, and so in-
orthodox councils. Hence Rome appeared capable of ordination, he discussed at length
as the bulwark of the cause of truth, and its also in other epistles."* He decides that they
claim to be the unerring guardian of the apos- are to be so accounted, for baptism is not the
tolic faith and discipline gained extensive commencement of a new life in such sort as
credence. Innocent himself was eminently to relax the obligations of a previous marriage.
the man to enter into, and make the most of, Though with hesitation and much anxiety, he
the position he was called to occupy. Un- allows the promotion of Photinus, notwith-
stained in life, able and resolute, with a full
appreciation of the dignity and prerogatives * C{. Epp.ii.iii. Bibl. Pa//-. Galland. St. Jerome,
of his see, he lost no opportunity of asserting in one of his letters, strongly maintains the opposite
its claims, and under him the idea of universal
view to Innocent, and Jerome's view was probably
the prevalent one at the time, for he speaks of the
papal supremacy, though as yet somewhat number of persons ordained, and even advanced to
shadowy, was already taking form. At his the episcopate, after marrying a second wife after
accession the empire had for seven years been baptism, being large enough to compose a council.
;

INNOCENTIUS I. INNOCENTIUS I. 51"

standing the condemnation of him by previous prohibition of conjugal intercourse to the


popes, on the ground that they had been priests in O.T. before officiating is adduced
imposed on by false reports and he disallows as before
;
also St. Paul's injunction to the
;

the deposition of EustatiusCE/'. xvii. Galland.)- Corinthian laity to abstain for a time, that
Another epistle, addressed to the bishops of they might give themselves unto prayer
Macedonia, confirms the deposition of Babalius whence it follows that the clergy, to whom
and Taurianus, who had appealed to Rome prayer and sacrifice is a continual duty, ought
from the sentence of the bishops of their pro- always to abstain. When St. Paul said that
vince. This appeal the bishops seem to have a bishop was to be the husband of one wife,
taken amiss, for Innocent presses upon them he did not mean that he was to live with her,
the advantage of having their judgment revised else he would not have said, " They that are
(Ep. xviii. Galland.)- in the flesh cannot please God " and he said

;

(ii) Gaul. Victricius, bp. of Rouen, having " having children," not " begetting " them.
been in Rome towards the end of 403 {Ep. ad The incontinence of clergy whom the injunc-
Victric. § 14, and Paul. Nolan. Ep. ad Victric. tion of pope Siricius had not reached may,
xxxvii. i), applied to the pope soon after for however, be condoned but they are not to
;

information as to the practice and discipline be promoted to any higher order. (2) To the
of the Roman church. Innocent sent him a question whether such as had led continually
letter containing 14 rules, of which he says loose lives after baptism might be admitted
that they are no new ones, but derived by to penance and communion at the approach
tradition from the apostles and fathers, though of death, Innocent replies that, though in
too generally unknown or disregarded. He former times penance only and not communion
directs Victricius to communicate them to the was accorded in such cases, the strict rule may
bishops and others, with a view to their future now be relaxed, and both given. (3) Baptized
observance. Among them were: (i) No bishop Christians are not precluded from inflicting
may ordain without the knowledge of his torture or condemning to death as judges, nor
metropolitan and the assistance of other from suing as advocates for judgment in a
bishops. (3) Ordinary causes against bishops capital case. Innocent, however, elsewhere
are to be determined by the other bishops of precludes Christians who had been so engaged
the province, saving always the authority of from ordination {Ep. xxvii. ad Felicem). (4)
Rome. (4) Greater causes, after the judgment To the question how it was that adultery in a
of the bishops, are to be referred to the wife was more severely visited than in a
apostolic see, " as the synod [referring, pro- husband, it is replied that the cause was the
bably, to the canons of Sardica] has decreed." unwillingness of wives to accuse their hus-
(6, 7) No layman who has married a widow, bands, and the difficulty of convicting the
or been twice married, may be ordained. (8) latter of transgression, not that adultery was
No bishop may ordain any one from another more criminal in one case than in the other.
diocese without leave of its bishop. (9) Con- (5) Divorced persons who marry again during
verts from Novatianism and Montanism are to the life of their first consort and those who
bereceived by imposition of hands only, without marry them are adulterers, and to be excom-
iteration of baptism but such as, having left
;
municated, but not their parents or relations,
the church, had been rebaptized by heretics, unless accessory. Lastly, a list is given of the
are only to be received after long penance. (10) canonical books of Scripture, the same as are
Priests and Levites who have wives are not now received by the church of Rome while ;

to cohabit with them. This rule is supported certain books, bearing the names of Matthias,
by argument, resting mainly on the prohibi- James the Less, Peter, John, and Thomas, are
tion of intercourse with their wives to priests repudiated and condemned.
under the old law before officiating. Christian —
(iii) Spain. In 400 had been held the first
priests and Levites, it is argued, ought always council of Toledo, mainly to deal with Pris-
to be prepared to officiate. (11) Monks, taking cillianists returning to the church. Two such
minor orders, may not marry. (12) Courtiers bishops, Symphorius and Dichtynius, with
and public functionaries are not to be admitted others, had been received by the council but ;

to any clerical order ; for they might have to certain bishops of Baetica still refused to
exhibit or preside over entertainments un- communicate with them. A Spanish bishop,
doubtedly invented by the devil, and were Hilary, who had subscribed the decree of the
liable to be recalled to his service by the em- council of Toledo, went with a priest, Elpidius,
peror, so as to cause much " sadness and to Rome, to represent this to the pope com-
;

anxiety." Victricius is reminded of painful plaining also of two bishops, Rufinus and
cases he had witnessed in Rome, when the pope Minicius, who had ordained other bishops out
had with difficulty obtained from the emperor of their own province without the knowledge
the exemption even of priests from being re- of the metropolitan ; and of other prevalent
called to his service. (13) Veiled virgins who irregularities with respect to ordinations.
marry are not to be admitted even to penance The complainants do not appear to have been
till the husband's death ; but (14) such as have commissioned by any synod, or other author-
promised virginity, but have not been" veiled ity of the Spanish church, to lay these matters
by thepriest," maybe reconciled after penance. before the pope, but Innocent took the
In 405 Innocent was similarly consulted by opportunity to address a letter, after a synod
another bp. of Gaul, Exsuperius of Toulouse, held at Rome, to the bishops of the Toledo
whom he commends for referring doubtful council, advising or directing them ; though
questions to the apostolic see, and gives him without asserting, as he does to other churches,
the following directions (i) Priests or dea-
: the authority of the Roman see. He con-
cons who cohabit with their wives are to be demns those who refused to communicate with
deprived, as pope Siricius had directed. The reconciled Priscillianists, and directs the

i

618 INNOCENTIUS I. INNOCENTIUS I.

bishops to inquire into the cases of Rufinus becomes in Innocent the fountain-head from
and Minicius and to enforce the canons. As which all streams must flow. He addresses

to other prevalent irregularities such as the the bishops of the Milevetan synod in the same
ordination of persons who had, after baptism, strain. He then proceeds to condemn the
pleaded as advocates, served in the army, or Pelagian heresy in strong terms and to ana-
as courtiers (curiales) been concerned in thematize all its abettors and supporters. To
objectionable ceremonies or entertainments adduce proofs, he says, is unnecessary, since his
he directs that such past irregularities should correspondents had said all that was wanted.
be condoned for fear of scandal and disturb- He declines to accede to their suggestion that
ance, but avoided in the future. He insists, he should make overtures to Pelagius, or send
as so often in his letters, on the incapacity for for him to Rome. It is for the heretical, he
ordination of such as had married widows or says, to come to me of his own accord, if
had married twice, and again protests that ready to retract his errors ; if not ready, he
baptism cannot annul the obligation of a would not obey my summons if he should
;

previous marriage. He supports these pro- come, repudiate his heresy, and ask pardon,
hibitions by arguments from O.T. and from he will be received (Epp. Augustine, xc.-xcv. ;

St. Paul, " Husband of one wife " {Ep. iii. Epp. Innoc. clxxxi.-clxxxiii. Galland.).
Bibl. Patr. Galland.). We do not know how In a letter to Decentius, bp. of Eugubium in
this admonitory letter was received in Spain, Umbria (dated a.d. 416), the claims of the

(iv) Africa. In 412 or 413 Innocent wrote Roman see are no less strongly asserted than
to Aurelius, bp. of Carthage, requesting him in the letters to the African bishops. Inno-
to announce in synod the day for keeping cent tells him that no one can be ignorant of
Easter in 414, with the view of its being the obligation of all to observe the traditions","
announced, as was then customary, to the and those alone, which the Roman church had
church by the bp. of Rome (Ep. xiv. Galland.). received from St. Peter, the prince of the
Towards the end of 416 he received synodal apostles, and which that chiu-ch ever pre-
letters from councils at Carthage and Milevis served — especially as no churches had been
in Numidia, and from St. Augustine (who had founded in Italy, Gaul, Spain, Africa, Sicily,
taken part in the latter council), with four or the interjacent islands, except by St. Peter
other bishops, on the Pelagian controversy ;
or his successors. The letter proceeds to
to all of which he replied in Jan. 417. This require observance of various Roman usages,
correspondence illustrates the relations then (i) The pax in the Eucharist must be given
subsisting between the West African church after communion, not before. (2) The names
and Rome. (For such relations at an early of such as offer oblations at the Eucharist are
period see Stephanus Cvprianus Sixtus not to be recited by the priest before the
; ;

II.) The synodal letters inform Innocent of sacrifice, or the canon. (3) Infants after
the renewal of the condemnation of Pelagius baptism may not be confirmed by unction
and Coelestius pronounced five years previous- except by the bishop but priests may anoint
;

ly at Carthage, and very respectfully request other parts of the body than the forehead,
him to add the authority of the apostolical see using oil blessed by the Ijishop. (4) Saturday
to the decrees of their mediocrity (" ut statutis as well as Friday in each week is to be observed
nostrae mediocritatis etiam apostolicae sedis as a fast, in commemoration of the whole time
auctoritas adhibeatur") setting forth the Christ was in the grave.
; (5) Demoniacs may
heresies condemned, and arguments against receive imposition of hands from priests or
them. They recognize the weight that the other clergy commissioned by the bishop. (6)
pope's approval would carry, but do not at all St. James's direction that the sick are to call
imply that the validity of their own condem- for the elders of the church does not preclude
nation depended on it. The five bishops imply the bishop from administering the unction ;

some doubt as to his probable action, having but not only priests, but any Christian may
heard that there were some in Rome who anoint, using chrism prepared by the bishop.
favoured the heretic ; and they await the Penitents, however, to whom the other sacra-
result with suspense, fear, and trembling. ments are denied, may not receive unction,
Innocent, in replying, assumes much greater " quia genus sacramenti est." It appears
dependence on the see of Rome on the part of plain from the way the unction of the sick is
the Africans than their language had implied, spoken of that it was then used with a view
and asserts very large claims to general to recovery, not as a last rite. (7) One Roman
authority. He commends the bishops of the custom, that of sending, on the Lord's day,
Carthaginian synod for referring the matter the Eucharist consecrated by the bishop to the
to his judgment, as knowing what was due to presbyters throughout the city, that all on that
the see of the apostle from whom all episcopal day at least may partake of one communion,
authority was derived and for having ob- is not to be observed where it involved carry-
;

seryed the decrees of the Fathers, resting on ing the sacrament to great distances. Even
divine authority, according to which nothing in Rome it is not taken to the priests in the
done, even in remote and sejiarated provinces, various cemeteries (Epp. xxv. Galland.).
was to be considered settled till it had come to II. East. — In 404 Innocent began to inter-
the knowledge of the Roman see and been vene in the affairs of the East in the matter of
confirmed by its authority, that all waters St. Chrysostom, who had been deposed and
proceeding from the fountain of their birth, the driven from Constantinople after the synod of
pure streams of the uncorrupted head, might the Oak in 403, and finally expelled on June
flow through the different regions of the whole 20, 404. A letter reached Innocent from
world. The abundant stream of Rome, flow- Chrysostom himself, another from the 40
ing, the bishops hoped, from the same fotm- bishops who remained in his communion, a
tain-head as the smaller stream of Africa, third from his clergy. That from Chrysostom
INNOCENTIUS I. INNOCENTIUS I. 519
(given by Palladius in his Dialogus de Vita West. Its contents leave no doubt of this.
S. Johan. Chrysost.) was addressed to the Honorius, in his letters to his brother, speaks
bps. of Rome, Aquileia, and Milan, as the three of the Western bishops generally having been
great bishops of the West. It requests them applied to, and quotes their views as of equal
to protest against what had been done, and to moment with that of the bishops of Rome.
continue in communion with the writer. To all Innocent in his replies makes no claim to
these letters Innocent replied that, while still adjudicate, nor does he make any assertion,
in communion with both parties, he reprobated of the universal supremacy of his see, such
the past proceedings as irregular, and proposed as appears in his letters to the Africans and
a council of Easterns and Westerns, from to Decentius, but recommends a council of
which avowed friends and enemies of the Easterns and Westerns as the proper authori-
accused should be excluded. A second letter tative tribunal. For a view of papal claims
arrived from Theophilus, patriarch of Alex- over the East less than a century later see
andria, with the Acts of the synod of the Oak, Felix III. and Acacius (7).
shewing that Chrysostom had been condemned After the death of Chrysostom the pope and
by 36 bishops, of whom 29 were Egyptians. all the West remained for some time out of
Innocent's brief reply is that he cannot re- communion with Constantinople, Alexandria,
nounce communion with Chrysostom on the and Antioch. The church of Antioch was the
strength of the past futile proceedings and first to be reconciled, when bp. Alexander in
demands that Theophilus should proffer his 413 replaced the name of Chrysostom in the
charges before a proper council, according to diptychs of his church, and sent a legation to
the Nicene canons. Communications from Rome to sue for restoration of communion.
Constantinople continued to reach Innocent, This was cordially granted in a synodal letter
one from about 25 bishops of Chrysostom's signed by 20 Italian bishops. Innocent wrote
party, informing him of Chrysostom's banish- to Alexander congratulating him warmly and
ment to Cucusus and the burning of his desiring a frequent interchange of letters. At
cathedral church. To them and to the ban- the same time Acacius of Beroea, one of
ished prelate the pope sent letters of com- Chrysostom's bitterest opponents, was re-
munion, being unable to render help. Cruel ceived into communion by Innocent through
persecution of the friends of Chrysostom, set Alexander, to whom the letter of communion
afoot by the Eastern emperor Arcadius, was sent for transmission. Atticus of Con-
brought a number of letters to Rome from stantinople was reconciled a few years later.
oppressed bishops and clergy, and the resort Moved partly by the threatening attitude of
thither of many in person, including Anysius the populace, and partly by the advice of the
of Thessalonica, Palladius of Helenopolis (the emperor, he consented, with a bad grace, to
author of the Dialogus de Vit. S. Johan. place Chrysostom's name on the diptychs, and
Chrysost.), and Cassianus, famous afterwards was received into communion. The church
as a monk and a writer. Innocent repre- of Alexandria was the last to come to terms.
sented the matter to the emperor Honorius, Theophilus's nephew Cyril, succeeding him
who wrote thrice to his brother Arcadius on Oct. 18, 412, was urged by Atticus to yield,
the subject. His third letter, sent under the and did so at last, though not till 417, ten
advice of a synod assembled by the pope at his years afterthedeath of Chrysostom. Through-
request, urged the assembling of a combined out Innocent appears to have acted with
council of Easterns and Westerns at Thessa- dignity, fairness, firmness, and moderation.
lonica. He desired Innocent to appoint five Alexander having, later, consulted the pope
bishops, two priests, and one deacon as a as to the jurisdiction of his patriarchal see of
deputation from the Western church ; and Antioch, Innocent replied that in accordance
these he charged with this third letter, in which with the canons of Nice {Can. vi.) the authority
he requested his brother to summon the of the bp. of Antioch extended over the whole
Oriental bishops. He also sent letters ad- diocese, not only over one province. Diocese
dressed to himself by the bishops of Rome and is here used, in its original sense, to denote a
Aquileia, as specimens of many so addressed, civil division of the empire comprising many
and as representing the opinion of the Western provinces. The Oriental diocese here referred
bishops on the question at issue (Innoc. Ep. to included 15 provinces, over the metro-
ix. Galland. ; Pallad. Dialog, c. iii.). The politans of which the patriarchal jurisdiction
deputation was accompanied by four Eastern of Antioch is alleged to extend.
bishops who had fled to Rome. It failed Two more letters, written in the last year
entirely. Persecution was continued in the of his life, finrther illustrate Innocent's attitude
East ; Honorius contemplated a war against towards the churches of the East. St. Jerome
his brother, but was deterred by a threatened had been attacked in his cell at Bethlehem by
invasion of the Goths ; and Innocent, failing a band of ruffians and had narrowly escaped ;

in his attempt to bring about an impartial the two noble virgins, Eustochium and her
council, separated himself from the commu- niece Paula, living in retirement under his
nion of Atticus, Theophilus, and Porphyrins. spiritual direction, had been driven from their
This appeal of St. Chrysostom and his house, which had been burnt, and some of
friends involved no acknowledgment of any their attendants killed. The party of Pelagius
authority of the Roman bishop over the was suspected. Innocent wrote to Jerome,
Eastern church. They apply to him not as a offering to exert " the whole authority of the
superior or a judge, but as a powerful friend apostolic see " against the offenders, if they
whose support they solicit. Chrysostom's could be discovered, and to appoint judges to
letter, which in Roman editions appears as try them ; and to John, bp. of Jerusalein, who
addressed to the pope alone, was really was no friend to Jerome, in an authoritative
written to the three principal bishops of the tone, reproving him severely for allowing such
620 IHENAEUS IRENAEUS
atrocities within his jurisdiction [Epp. xxxiv. latest dates proposed are 50 years apart (97-
XXXV. Galland.). 147). Various considerations lead us to fix on
III. Alaric.— There were three Gothic in- c. 126, or possibly c. 136, as the latest admis-


vasions of Italy the first under Alaric, the sible date.
Of his youthful literary training and culture
second under Radagaisus, the third led by
Alaric himself, who laid siege to Rome a.d. we can only judge from his writings, which
408. Innocent was within the city, the shew some acquaintance with the Greek poets
emperor at Ravenna. Famine and plague and philosophers he cites Homer, Hesiod,
;

having ensued during the siege, Zosimus, the Pindar, and Plato. Of his Christian training
heathen historian, alleges that Pompeianus, he tells us that, besides instructions from
the prefect of the city, having been persuaded Polycarp, he had other teachers, " Presbyters "
by certain Etruscan diviners that their spells (ofAsia Minor), whom hedesignates as mediate
and sacrifices, performed on the Capitol, could or immediate disciples of the apostles (i/aer. ii.
draw down lightnings against the enemy. 22, 5 iv. 27, I
; 32,
;
I ; v. 5, i ; 30, i ; 33, 3 ;

Innocent was consulted and consented, but the 36, i). Whether he was personally acquaint-
majority of the senators refused (v. 40). Sozo- ed with Papias, whom he mentions so frequent-
men mentions the circumstance but does not ly, is uncertain. If he was in Rome a.d. 156
implicate Innocent (ix. 6). It seems highly he doubtless continued his studies there. The
improbable that Innocent would sanction such time of his removal into Gaul is unknown, but
rites of heathenism. In 409 the offer of a ransom there were close ties between the missionary
led Alaric to raise the siege, and two deputations church of Gaul and the mother-churches of
were sent to the emperor at Ravenna to induce Asia Minor. At the time of the persecution,^
him to sanction the terms agreed on. The first to which the aged bp. Pothinus fell a victim^
having failed. Innocent accompanied the in the 17th year of Marcus AureHus, a.d. 177
second, and thus was not in the city when it (cf. my Chronologie der romischen Bischofe, p.
was finally taken on Aug. 24, 410. Alaric's 185), irenaeus was a presbyter at Lugdunum.
invasion was regarded as a judgment on That Irenaeus wrote the epistle of the Gallican
heathen rather than Christian Rome, and as confessors to the churches of Asia Minor and
a vindication of the church, the pope's Phrygia, which so vividly describes the perse-
providential absence being compared by cution (ap. Eus. H. E. v. i), is an uncertain
Orosius to the saving of Lot from Sodom. conjecture. There is indeed a fragment pre-
Undoubtedly the event was a marked one in served by Oecumenius and assigned to Irenaeus
the supersession of heathenism by Christianity. (Fragni. Graec. xiii. ap. Harvey, ii. 482 seq.),
The destruction of the old temples, never which really stands in very close connexion with
afterwards restored, the dispersion and ruin of that epistle, mentioning in a similar way the
families which clung most to the old order, the calumny about " Thyestean banquets," which
view that judgment had fallen on old heathen rested on depositions wrung from tortured
Rome, which its deities had been powerless to slaves, the endeavours of the persecutors to
protect, all helped to complete the triumph force the martyrs Sanctus and Blandina to make
of the church and to add importance to the alike confession, and Blandina'sanswer, which,
reign of Innocent. Soon after this great event though not identical with that in the epistle, is
Augustine (a.d. 413) began his famous work, nearly related to it. Irenaeus's mission to Rome
de Civitate Dei, though he took 13 years to was undertakentointercede with bp. Eleutherus
complete it, in which he sees a vision of the for the Montanists of Asia Minor in the name
kingdom of God rising on the ruins of the and on behalf of the Gallican confessors (Eus.

kingdom of the world a vision which grad- H. E. V. 3, 4). That another object of the
journey was that Irenaeus himself might
ually took more distinct shape in the idea,
already more or less grasped by Innocent, of obtain episcopal consecration at Rome is an
a Catholic Christendom united under the unproved assertion of some Roman Catholic
Roman see. authors. The common assumption that there
Innocent's Epistolae et Decreta are printed was then no episcopal see but Lyons in all
in Galland's Bibl. Pat. t. viii. and in Migne, Gaul is hardly warranted by the fact that in
Patr. Lat. t. xx. Cf. Innocent the Great bv the narrative of the persecution at Vienne a
C. H. C. Pirie-Gordon (Longmans ; 4 maps and deacon only and no bishop is mentioned. A
8 genealogical tables). [j.b Y.]— better argument is that Eusebius (H. E. v. 23)
appears to speak of Irenaeus as bishop of all
Irenaeus (l), bp. of Lyons. Very little is
known of his personal history except that he the churches of Gaul. But neither can be
was a native of Asia Minor in early youth had
; regarded as a sure proof.
seen and heard bp. Polycarp at Sm^nrna after- ;
As bp. of Lyons Irenaeus was distinguished
wards came into Gaul, and during the perse- for his zeal for the conversion of the heathen
cution of 177 carried, as presbyter of Lyons, (cf. the Acts of St. Ferreolus and his com-
a letter from the Gallican confessors to the panions. Boll. Acta SS. 16 Jun. iii.), and yet
Roman bp. Eleutherus (174 or 175-189) after ;
more by his conflicts with heretics and his
the death of bp. Pothinus of Lyons (177) be- strenuous endeavours to maintain the peace
came his successor (Eus. H. E. v. 5), and was of the church, in true accord with his name
still bishop in the time of bp. Victor, who suc- E/pT/i/atos (Peace-man). His great work
ceeded Eleutherus at Rome (189-198 or 199) ;
Against all Heresies was probably written
and that he took a leading part in all eccle- during his episcopate. The preface informs
siastical transactions and controversies of the us that he then first wrote as an ecclesiastical
time. St. Jerome speaks of him (de Vir. III. writer. We subsequently find him exerting
35) as having flourished in the reign of Com- himself to protect the churches of his native
modus (180-192). His birth is assigned to country (Asia Minor) from Roman pretensions
widely distant epochs. The earliest and the and aggression. The Roman bp. Victor was
IRENAEUS IRENAEUS 521

endeavouring to compel these churches, which Greek idiom, admit an easy solution when
had hitherto kept Easter, with the Jews, on translated back into Greek. Beside this Latin
Nisan 14, to conform to the practice of Rome. version, which appears to have soon super-
On their refusal to abandon the custom of their seded the Greek original in the Westernchurch,
forefathers, their reasons being given in a there was a Syriac translation, of which
letter addressed to Victor by Polycrates, bp. numerous fragments are extant and were
of Ephesus, he had cut them off from his first put together by Harvey in his ed. of
communion. This harsh treatment was Irenaeus (ii. 431 seq.). They are derived from
highly disapproved by many even of those the Brit. Mus. collection of Nitrian MSS., some
who, like the Roman bishop, kept Easter on of which are as old as the 6th, 7th, and 8th
the Sunday following the equinoctialfuU-moon. cents, (cf. Harvey, ii. 431, note). To these are
Among these was Irenaeus himself. In the added (Nos. xxi. xxxi. and xxxii.) fragments
name of all the Galilean churches he remon- of an Armenian interpolated version first
strated with Victor, in a writing of which a published by Pitra in his Spicilegium Soles-
considerable fragment is extant, reminding mense, t. i. (Paris, 1852). Of these No. xxi.
him of the example set by his predecessors, only is taken from the work Against Heresies.
who had found no occasion in these differences The almost entire agreement between these
of paschal observance for excommunicating Syriac fragments and the Old Latin version
their brethren of Asia Minor. Irenaeus (as further witnesses its genuineness and fidelity.
Eusebius further informs us, H. E. v. 23) also The Greek original, said to have been still
appealed to other foreign bishops, but without extant in the i6th cent., was made great use
any effect on the harsh determination of the of by Hippolytus (or whoever wrote the
Roman. Another writing of Irenaeus men- Philosophumena), Epiphanius, and Theodoret.
tioned by Eusebius (H. E. v. 20), which seems To the numerous extracts in these writers,
to have referred to the same subject, was esp. the first two, we owe the greater part of
entitled Trepl o-xtV/xaros and addressed to the original Greek of bk. i. —
the preface and
Blastus, head of the Roman Quartodecimans. cc. 1-2 1 entire, and numerous fragments
How long Irenaeus was bishop is uncertain. besides. Of the other books, the Greek has
His death is commonly assigned to 202 or 203. come down to us in isolated passages, mostly
This rests on the assumption that he was through citations by Eusebius. The ed. of
martyred under Septimius Severus. But such Wigan Harvey (2 vols. Camb. 1857) is based
a martyrdom is by no means established. on a careful collation of the Codices Claro-
Tertullian, Hippolytus, Eusebius, Epiphanius, mont. and Arundel. His Prolegomena con-
Ephrem, Augustine, Theodoret, are silent. In tain minute investigations into the origin,
the Syriac fragments Irenaeus is frequently characteristics and main phenomena of
spoken of as " a disciple of Polycarp, bishop Gnosticism, as well as concerning the life
and martyr," but not himself honoured with and writings of Irenaeus.
the martyr's title either there or in any Agaitist Heresies was written in Gaul.
quotations from his writings. The first wit- (Irenaeus says so expressly, lib. i. praef. 3,
ness for his martyrdom is found in Jerome's cf. i. 13, 7. We follow Massuet's division of
commentary on Isaiah, written c. 410, where chapters.) The date of composition is deter-
(c. 64) Irenaeus is spoken of as vir apostolicus mined iii. 3, 3, in which he speaks of Eleu-
episcopus et martyr ;but when elsewhere therus as then twelfth in succession to the
treating ex professo of his life and writings apostles on the episcopal chair of Rome {fvv
(de Vir. III. c. 35), Jerome is silent as to his 8(ii)5€KdT(fi rdiru} Toy ttjs etriffKOW?]^ drro tQv
martyrdom. As Dodwell conjectures, the dwoaroKwv Karexei- kXtjpov 'EXei'^epos). Ac-
words et martyr may be an interpolation. If cording to this, the third book was written at
not, Jerome must have learnt the alleged fact the earliest a.d. 174 or 175, at the latest a.d.
subsequently to 392, when the de Viris Illus- 189 (cf. Chronologie der rom-. Bischdfe, pp. 184
tribus was written. There is no witness for it sqq.). The commencement and completion
earlier than the 5th cent. of thework were possibly some years apart,
Writings. —The chief was the great work in but we cannot put the date of bks. iv. and v.
five books against Gnosticism entitled'EXeox"' so late as the episcopate of Victor (189-198 or
Kai dvarpoTrrj ttjs \p(vd(j}vvixov 71'uxrews, Detectio 199). Wemay tentatively assume 182, the
et eversio falso cognominatae agnitionis. (The mid-period of Eleutherus's episcopate, or(since
full Greek title is found in Eus. H. E. v. 7 the first two books alone appear to have been
Phot. Bibl. Cod. 120 and elsewhere ;
;

cf. also —
written immediately after each other cf. the
frequent references to it by Irenaeus in the prefaces to bks. ii. and iii. -v.) we may pro-
praefationes to bks. ii. iv. v. and the conclu- pose from A.D. 180 to 185 as the date of the
sion of bk. iv.) It is commonly cited under whole work. To assign a more exact date is
the briefer title 7rp6s aip^treis (contra Haereses). hopeless. That Irenaeus wrote as bishop, and
We possess it entire in the Latin version only, not earlier than 178 as presbyter, is by far
which, however, must have been made from most probable, though it cannot be drawn
the Greek original very soon after its com- with absolute certainty from the words of the
position, since the Latin was used by Tertul- preface to bk. v. to which Massuet appeals.
lian some ten years after, in his tractate adv. As the first external motive for its composi-
Valentinianos. Its translator was a Celt tion, Irenaeus himself mentions (lib. i. praef. ;

(witness the barbarous Latinity) probably ii. 17, I iii. praef.) the request of a friend
;
;

one of the clergy of Lyons. Most of the ori- for some instruction as to the heretical
ginal work being now lost, the slavish literality opinions of the Valentinians and how to refute
of the translator imparts to his version a very them. The recent spread of the Valentinian
high value. Many obscurities of expression, sect through the Rhone district had already
arising in part from a misunderstanding of the led Irenaeus to acquaint himself particularly
522 IRENAEUS IRENAEUS
with their writings and tenets. The danger- It of great interest to obtain more
would be
ous character of their teaching had been fully exact impressions of those other presbyters to
recognized by others, whom he modestly whose words and writings Irenaeus makes
designates as multo nobis meliores but these
; frequent reference. Besides the " God-loving
had been (iv. praef.) unable through ignorance elder," from whom he borrows the Iambic
of the Valentinian " rule " or system of doc- Senarii against Marcus, Irenaeus cites on
trine to adequately refute it. That it was his various occasions from " presbyters and
first object to refute Valentinianism, and only disciples of the apostles " under which title,
;

in a secondary and occasional way to attack besides Polycarp, bp. Papias of Hierapolis
other heresies, is evident from the whole must certainly be included. From bk. iv. of
construction and arrangement of bk. i., which Papias's Ao7i'a';' KvpiaKQiv iirjyricrei^ Irenaeus
is almost exclusively occupied with the cites the saying traditionally attributed to our
Valentinians, and in a great measure bk. ii. Lord on the alleged testimony of St. John
also. Irenaeus repeatedly observes that he concerning the glories of His millennial king-
who refutes the Valentinians at the same time dom (v. 33, 3 sqq.).
refutes all other heresies (cf. ii. 31, i) " de- Of the writings of Polycarp there is no
structis itaque his qui a Valentino sunt, omnis certain trace in Irenaeus, but he held in faithful
haereticorum eversa est multitudo," an asser- remembrance his oral utterances. He knows
tion of which he proceeds (31, 1-35, 5) to give indeed several writings of the bp. of Smyrna
detailed proof, in reference to various heretical {Ep. ad Florin, ap. Eus. v. 20) and specially
parties. Thus in the preface to bk. iv. he mentions Polycarp's Ep. to the Philippians
speaks of the " doctrina eorum qui sunt a {Haer. in. 2, 4). Of the works of Justin Martyr
Valentino" as a "recapitulatio omnium haere-
ticorum," and in bk. ii. of having taken them

Irenaeus knew and used besides the Syn:
tagma against all Heresies, and the possibly
as an example of the way in which all heretics
aretoberefuted("tanquamspeculumhabuimus
identical Syntagma against Marcion —
the first
Apologies, without, however, citing it (Quellen
eos totius eversionis "). In bks. iii. iv. and v. der ditesten Ketzergeschichte, p. 63). From
the circle of vision is enlarged. Taking the which of Justin's works the citation, v. 26, 2,
Scriptures for his guide, he goes through in is derived cannot be decided. With far
order the fundamental doctrines of Gnosticism, greater confidence we may assume Irenaeus
and besides Valentinian dogmas reviews the to have used the Memoirs of Hegesippus (iii.
cognate ones of other hereticalschools, specially 3, 3; 4. 3. ci. Quellen der dlt.Keizergesch.p. 73),
of the Marcionites, but nowhere gives such a and he makes one citation from the Ep. of
connected view and refutation of other Gnostic Ignatius to the Romans (v. 28, 4), but without
systems as of the Valentinian in bk. ii. mentioning his name.
His sources were primarily the writings of Irenaeus's great work is divided into five
the heretics themselves. In the preface of books. Bk. i. contains a detailed account of
bk. i. he speaks of the vwofivrifjLaTa of disciples the Valentinian system, together with a
of Valentinus, and observes that he has been general view of the opinions of the other sects.
in personal communication with some of them. Bk. ii. undertakes to exhibit the unreasonable-
More particularly it is the school of Ptole- ness and self-contradiction of the doctrines of
maeus, an a,irdpdi(7/u,a rrjs Ova\€VTii>ov trxoKfi?, Valentinianism. His chief object here is to
whose dogmatic system he sets himself to combat the doctrine of the Demiurge or
describe. The detailed account (c. Haer. i. Creator as a subordinate existence outside the
1-7) describes its development in the Western Pleroma, of limited power and insight, and
or Italian form, and this from several writings, separated from the " Father " by an infinite
one of which Clemens Alexandrinus also made chasm. He also controverts the Valentinian
use of in the excerpta ex scriptis Theodoti, cc. doctrine concerning the Pleroma and its
44-65. From another source were derived antithesis the Kenoma, the theory of Emana-
additional details, cc. 11 and 12, of various tions, of the Fall of Achamoth, and the forma-
opinions within the Valentinian system and tion of the lower world through the sufferings
of Valentinus himself, Secundus, Ptolemaeus, of the Sophia and finally, at great length,
;

and others; c. 13, 1-5, cc. 14 and 15 are the Gnostic teaching concerning souls, and the
concerned with Marcus, his magic arts and distinction between Psychici and Pneumatici.
theories about the symbolism of letters and Bks. iii. iv. and v. contain the refutation of
numbers, concluding with a citation of some Gnostic doctrines from Holy Scripture, pre-
Iambic Scnarii, written against him by a ceded by a short dissertation on the sources
" Divinae aspirationis Senior et Praero of Christian truth. The one foundation of the
veritatis " (6 Oediruevaros irpeff^vTrj's koX Kr)pv^ faith is the gospel transmitted first by oral
T^s i\r}0elas). The same authority is further tradition and subsequently committed to
designated, after the quotation, as " amator writing. The Gnostics allow neither the
Dei senior," which Epiphanius expresses by refutation of their doctrines out of Scripture
6 dto<pi\rii wpea^vT-qs. nor disproof from tradition. Against the one
Two other sources, from which Irenaeus they appeal to a secret doctrine handed down
may have derived acquaintance with Gnostic among themselves, against the other to their
opinions, have been conjectured by Harnack own higher knowledge (gnosis). Irenaeus
{Zur Quellenkritik der Gcschichie des Gnosti- meets them by stating the characteristics of
cisimis. p. 56) for tlie information in bks. iii. -v. genuine apostolic tradition as ensuring the
concerning the details of Marcion's system, right interpretation of Holy Scripture. The
which with the Valentinian is the heresy most chief media and transmitters of this tradition
frequently referred to in that portion. These are the apostolic churches and their episcopal
were Marcion's own writings and a refutation succession from the apostles themselves (Haer.
of Marcion by a presbyter of Asia Minor. iii. 1-4). He proceeds to give the proof from
IRENAEUS IRENAEUS 623
Scripture — against the doctrine of the
first, Florinus, a presbyter who was a partisan of
Demiurge, then against the Gnostic Christo- the error of Valentinus, and published an
logy. There is but one God, Creator of the abominable book, thus wrote " whereupon
:

world and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, follows the fragment itself. From these
Who is the Son, the Eternal God-Logos, and words it appears that the epistle from which
has truly been made Flesh in order to redeem the fragment was taken could not have been
mankind from its fall in Adam. Under this written till after the first three books Against
head he combats the errors of both Docetae Heresies, probably not till after the completion
and Ebionites, and, returning to his main of the whole, and, at the earliest, c. 190.
purpose, attacks the chief Gnostic doctrine in If Eusebius is right in making the deposition
a refutation of Marcion's attempt to distin- of the Roman presbyter Blastus contempo-
guish between the Good God and the Just or raneous with that of Florinus ,the epistle ad-
Judicial God. This occupies him at the close dressed to the former by Irenaeus and entitled
of bk. iii. Bk. iv. is directed against the irepl (TxlcyfJ-aTOs (Eus. H. E. v. 20) must belong
same doctrine. Irenaeus now attacks the to the same period. Blastus was, according
distinction made between the lawgiver and to Eusebius, the head of the Roman Montan-
the Father, shewing the identity of the divine ists (H. E. V. 15) — cf. also Pacianus, Ep. ad
revelation in O. and N. T., the close connexion
between law and gospel, and the typical pre-

Sympronian. c. i and, according to Pseudo-
Tertullian (Libell. adv. Omn. Haereses, 22). a
announcement of the N.T. in the Old. He Quartodeciman. Both are probably correct.
shews that eternal happiness or endless misery We know that the Montanists of Asia Minor
will befall men from the same God, as reward (like the Christians there) kept Easter on
or as punishment for their own free choice of Nisan 14 (cf. Schwegler, Montanismus, p. 251) ;

good or evil. Bk. v. gives a detailed proof of it is therefore quite credible that Blastus, as a
the resurrection of the body and of the mil- Montanist, may have conformed to Quarto-
lennial kingdom. deciman practice, and, as a member of the
Of other writings of Irenaeus, fragments Roman presbytery, may have sought to intro-
only, or bare names, have been preserved. duce it into Rome. But if Blastus be the one
Whether he ever carried out the intention, referred to in another Syriac fragment {Fragm.
announced i. 27, 4 and iii. 12, 12, of writing a xxvii. ap. Harvey, ii. 456), he was not an
special treatise against Marcion, cannot be Asiatic but an Alexandrian ; and on this sup-
determined. Eusebius [H. E. v. 8) mentions position his Quartodecimanism must have
this intention, and elsewhere (H. E. iv. 25) come from his close connexion with the Mon-
reckons Irenaeus, with Philip of Gortyna and tanists of Asia Minor, since the Paschal calen-
Modestus, among authors who had written dar of Alexandria was the same as that of
against Marcion. Of his Epistle to Florinus, Rome. One can, moreover, quite understand
Eusebius has preserved a considerable frag- bp. Victor's responding to any attempt on
ment. Florinus was an older contemporary Blastus's part to create a schism in the Roman
of Irenaeus and a disciple of Polycarp. He church by introducing the Asiatic custom, with
was afterwards a presbyter at Rome, and was deposition from the presbyteral office. Such
deposed, apparently for heresy (Eus. H. E. a breach of discipline in his own diocese (the
V. 15). The epistle of Irenaeus, addressed to actual spectacle of some Roman Christians
him, bore also, according to Eusebius (H. E. keeping Easter with the Asiatics on Nisan 14,
v. 20), the title Tiepi pLOfapxl-^s fj wepl rod fxri and in opposition to the ancestral custom
eluai Tov Qibv ttoitjttji' KanCiv, which implies of the bps. of Rome) would naturally excite
that he had adopted Gnostic opinions. The him to uncompromising harshness towards
" God " whom he apparently regarded as the the brethren of Asia Minor generally so that
;

author of evil was the Gnostic Demiurge. on these refusing to conform to the Roman
He afterwards, according to Eusebius, inclined custom, he at once cut off the churches of
to Valentinianism ; whereupon Irenaeus the Asiatic province and the neighbouring
addressed him in another treatise, inpi 6y- dioceses from his church-communion (cf. my
5od5oj, from which Eusebius quotes the con- art. in Zeitschrift fiir wissenschaftliche Theo-
cluding words, conjuring the copyists to make logie, 1866, pp. 192 seq., and Chronologie der
an accurate and faithful transcript of his rom. Bischofe, p. 174). These ecclesiastical
words. The epistle iripl /j.ovapx'o-s is re- troubles moved the man of peace, Irenaeus, to
garded by Leimbach (Zeiischrift fitr lutherische send letters of remonstrance to both Blastus
Theologie, 1873, pp. 626 seq.) and Lightfoot and bp. Victor. To the former, which accord-
(Contemp. Rev. 1875, May, p. 834) as one of ing to Eusebius bore the title Trepl (rx'o-Aiaros,
Irenaeus's earliest writings. Leimbach would may possibly be assigned the Syriac fragment
date it between 168 and 177, but his arguments (xxvii. ap. Harvey, ii. 456) introduced with the
are trivial. Of far greater importance is following words :
" Irenaeus, bp. of Lyons,
Lightfoot's argument that the treatise Trept who was a contemporary of Polycarp, disciple
d75od5o5 was probably written before the of the apostle, bp. of Smyrna and martyr, and
great work Against Heresies, since its detailed for this reason is held in just estimation, wrote
treatment of the Valentinian system would to an Alexandrian that it is right, with respect
have made a special tractate on the Ogdoad to the Feast of the Resurrection, that we
superfluous. But Lightfoot seems to have should celebrate it upon the first day of the
overlooked the fragmentary portion of an week." But inasmuch as we know from
epistle to Victor of Rome, preserved among Eusebius [H. E. v. 24) that Irenaeus wrote on
the Syriac fragments of Irenaeus [Fragm. the same subject to several persons, it is
xxviii. ap. Harvey, ii. p. 457), which is intro- possible that this Alexandrian may have been
duced with the words, " And Irenaeus, bp. of another than Blastus. Of the letter to Victor
Lyons, to Victor, bp. of Rome, concerning Eusebius (ib.) has preserved a considerable
524 IRENAEUS IRENAEUS
extract showing that the current controversies 1 as it amid conflicts with Gnosticism and
rose
regarded also the mode and duration of the Montanism, out of the chiurch of the post-
antecedent Paschal fast. Some kept one day, apostolic era. Baur and the Tiibingen school
others two days, others several days some ; were wrong in explaining the development of
again reckoned their fast-day at 40 hours primitive Catholic Christianity as the fruit of
of day and night {ol de TeaaapaKovTa &pas a compromise effected by the Pauline and
i]fjifpii>ds re Kal vvKTepivas crvfifxeTpouffi Tr}v Petrine parties soon after the middle of the
rin^pav avTuiv). But these differences of 2nd cent, to overcome the new opposition.
practice resting on ancient custom so Ire- — The earliest post- apostolic form of Christianity

naeus proceeds to say have never yet dis- was no mere product of conflicting anti-
theses of the apostolic time, or of their re-
turbed the church's peace and unity of faith.
For although former bishops of Rome, from conciliation. The Jewish-Christian commu-
Xystus to Soter, had never kept Nisan 14, nities of Palestine and Syria formed, even
they had always maintained full communion towards the end of the ist cent., a small and
with any who came from dioceses where it was vanishing minority as compared to the swell-
observed e.g. Polycarp, whom Anicetus per-
;
ing dimensions of the Gentile church. That
mitted to celebrate in his own church, both to some extent Jewish-Christian influences did
separating afterwards in peace. No title is operate upon Gentile Christianity during the
given by Eusebius to this epistle, but accord- former half of the 2nd cent, need not wholly
ing to the Quaestiones et Responsa ad Ortho- be denied yet the one feature in which we
doxos of Pseudo-Justin (c. 115) it was entitled
;

are most tempted to trace them —


the con-
wepl Tou ndcrxa (cf. Fragm. Grace, vii. ap. —
ception of the gospel as a new law is quite as
Harvey, ii. 478). In the same work Pseudo- much the outcome of an internal development^
Justin tells us further that the old Christian within the Gentile church itself. The ul-
custom of refraining from kneeling on Easter timate triumph of Christian universalism, and
Day, as a sign of Christ's resurrection, is the recognized equality between Jewish and
carried back by Irenaeus to apostolic times, Gentile members of the church of the Messiah,
and the observance of this custom continued was a fruit of the life-long labours of St. Paul.
through the season of Pentecost, as the The new Christian community, largely Gen-
whole period (of 50 days after Easter) was tile, regarded itself as the true people of God,
regarded as equal to Easter Day itself. as the spiritual Israel, and as the genuine heir
Of other writings of Irenaeus Eusebius men- of the church of the O.T., while the great mass
tions [H. E. v. 26) a short tractate, 7rp6s of Jewish unbelievers were, as a penalty for
"EXXvjcas, which bore also the title -rrepi ewi- their rejection of the true Messiah, excluded
(TTrjfxrjs, an iTridei^LS toO aTroaroKiKoD K-qpvyfia-
from the blessings of the kingdom of God.
Tos, addressed to a certain Marcian To this new spiritual Israel were speedily, in
and a ;
part at least, transferred the forms of the
^i^Xlov dLaX^^euv 5ia(p6pu)i', in which he is
O.T. theocracy, and all the Jewish Scriptures
said to have cited Hebrews and the Wisdom of were received as divinely inspired documents
Solomon. Jerome, apparently copying Euse- by the new church. But, whereas St. Paul
bius, makes, however, a distinction [de Vir.
had emphasized the antithesis between law
III. 35) between the \6-yos wphs "Y,\\r}va$ and
and gospel, the Gentile churches after his
the -rnpl ^TTKTTri/j.rjs ("scripsit . . contra .
time attached themselves more closely to the
Gentes volumen breve et de Disciplina aliud "). doctrinal norm of the older apostles, and laid
The tractate on Apostolical Preaching ad- stress on the continued validity of the law
dressed to Marcian appears to have been a for Christians though, as it was impossible
;

catechetical work on the Rule of Faith. The


to bind Gentiles to observe the ceremonial
^i^Xiov diaX^^iu}!' dia^opiov
appears, in ac- law, its precepts were given, after the example
cordance with the early usage of the word of the Jewish religious philosophy of Alex-
SiaX^^eis (cf. Harvey, i. p. clxvii. sqq.), to andria, a spiritual interpretation. Already,
have been a collection of homilies on various in Hebrews, we find the relations between O.
Scripture texts. Rufinus incorrectly renders and N. T. viewed under the aspect of Type
StaX^^eis by Dialogus Jerome by Tractatus.
; and Anti-type, Prophecy and Fulfilment. The
From these homilies were probably taken the later Gentile Christianity learned to see
numerous Gk. fragments found in various everywhere in O.T. types of the gospel revela-
catenae, containing expositions of various tion, and thus combined freedom from the
passages of the Pentateuch and the historical Mosaic ceremonial law with the maintenance
books of O.T. and of St. Matthew and St. of the entire continuity of the O. and N. T.
Luke {Fr. Grace, xv.-xxiii., xxv.-xxix., xxxi., revelation. The Moral Law, as the centre
xxxiii., xxxiv., xxxix., xl., xlii.-xlvii.), as well and substance of the Mosaic revelation, re-
as the Syriac fragment of an exposition of the mained the obligatory norm of conduct for
Song of Solomon (Fr. Syr. xxvi. ap. Harvey, Gentile Christians Christ had not abrogated
;

ii. 455) and the Armenian homily on the Sons the law of Moses, but fulfilled and completed
of Zebedee (Fr. Syr. xxxii. ap. Harvey, ii. 464 it. The theological learning of the time con-
sqq.). To the same collection would also fines itself too exclusively to a typological
belong a tractate on the History of Elkanah interpretation of O.T. So much the greater,
and Samuel, mentioned in a Syriac manuscript on the other hand, is the influence exercised
(Harvey, ii. 507 note). upon these writers by heathen philosophic
His Theology and Influcnee on Eeclesiastieal culture. In the Apologists of the middle

——
Development. Irenaeus, with Tertullian, Hip- portion of the 2nd cent. Justin, Tatian,
polytus, Cyprian, on the one side, and Clemens Theophilus, Athenagoras this influence ap-
Alexandrinus and Origen on the other, was a pears specially strong. Justin makes con-
main founder of the ancient Catholic church, stant endeavours to comprehend Christianity

IRENAEUS IRENAEUS 525

under the then generally accepted forms of the resurrection of the flesh, a day of final
philosophical speculation, and to commend it judgment, and the setting up on earth of a
as a manifestation of the highest reason to millennial kingdom, they taught the spiritual-
the cultured minds of his time. In this way istic conception of a saving deliverance of
he became the first founder of a Catholic pneumatic souls and their translation into the
system of theology. The doctrine of the upper world whereas for the Psychici was
;

Divine Logos as the " Second God," the reserved only a limited share in such know-
Mediator through Whom all divine revelation ledge and salvation, and for the material
is transmitted, was already for Justin an apo- (" hylic " or " choic ") man and for the earthly
logetic weapon, remained thence forward a bodies of men, nothing but an ultimate and
standing basis for the philosophical defence of complete annihilation. It cannot be denied
Christianity, and proved in after-times the that both the Gentile Christianity of that era
strongest weapon in the church's armoury in and the Catholic theology of following times
the conflict with Gnostic opinions. appropriated various elements nearly related
The widespread appearance of the manifold to these Gnostic speculations. A Catholic
forms of Gnosticism in the 2nd cent, is a most gnosis also appeared, which differed essentially
significant proof of the far-reaching influence from that heretical gnosis in intending to
exercised by pagan thought and speculation maintain unimpaired the received foundations
on the Gentile church of that age. The of Christian faith. Yet, in truth, the idealistic
danger from the influx on all sides of foreign speculations of the Alexandrine school were
thought was all the greater because the separated from those of the heretical gnosis
Gentile churches had as yet but a feeble by very uncertain lines of demarcation, and
comprehension of the ideas specially belonging were afterwards, in some essential points,
to Christianity. The conflict with Gnosticism rejected by the church. Irenaeus, in contra-
gradually gave fresh vigour to that revival of distinction to the Alexandrine doctors, ap-
fundamental Christian and Pauline thought pears to have been less concerned with setting
which distinguishes the theology of Irenaeus up a Catholic in opposition to the heretical
and of other early " Catholic " doctors at the gnosis, than with securing the foundations of
end of the 2nd and beginning of the 3rd cent, the common Christian faith by strengthening
from the simpler and poorer view of Christian the bands of existing church unity. He recog-
truth presented in the works of the early nizes certain subjects which, as lying outside
Apologists. The perils with which the the rule of faith delivered to all, might be
Gnostic speculation menaced the Christian safely entrusted to the deeper and more
system were, on the one hand, concerned with searching meditations and inquiries of the
that which formed a common groundwork for more enlightened, but these related only to a
Christianity and Judaism i.e. first and clearer understanding of the details of the
specially the Monotheistic principle itself, and history of divine revelation, the right inter-
then the doctrines of Divine Justice, Freedom pretation of parables, insight into the divine
of the Will, and Future Retribution ;on the plan of human salvation (why God should
other hand, they had regard to the traditions bear with such long-suffering the apostasy of
peculiar to Christianity concerning the his- angels and the disobedience of man at the
torical person and work of Jesus Christ, the Fall), the differences and unity of the two
genuine human realism of His life and suffer- Testaments, the necessity for the Incarnation
ings, the universal application of His redeem- of the Logos, the second coming of Christ at
ing work to all believers, and the external and the end of time, the conversion of the heathen,
historical character of that final restitution to the resurrection of the body, etc. {Haer. i.
which Christians looked forward. The Mono- 10, 3). These questions would arise in the
theistic idea, the divine /u-ovapxia, was assailed course of the Gnostic controversy, but the
by the Gnostic doctrine of the Demiurge, the form in which Irenaeus presents them assumes
Pleroma, and the series of Aeons ; and the everywhere a clear antithesis to Gnostic
universally accepted doctrine of our Lord's speculation and a firm retention of the
Incarnation and Messiahship by the various Catholic rule of faith. Only in quite an
forms of Gnostic docetism. Further, the isolated form is once named the question why
whole ethical basis of Christian religion was one and the same God should have created
destroyed by the distinctions which Gnostic the temporal and the eternal, the earthly and
teachers made between two or three separate the heavenly while Irenaeus insists strongly
;

classes of mankind, and by their view of on the narrow bounds of human knowledge
redemption as a purely theoretical process, or and insight, and on the impossibility for mor-
as the impartation of true knowledge (gnosis) tal man to know the reasons for everything
to those only who by their own originally (ii. 25, 3; 28, i), and is never weary of
pneumatic nature had from the beginning chastising the arrogant presumption of the
been predestined to reception into the heaven- Pneumatici who exalt themselves above the
ly realm of light. Instead of the Christian Creator, while their impotence in the presence
doctrine of Freewill and consequent respon- of His works is manifest to all (ii. 30, i sqq.).
sibility, they taught an iron heathenish meta- His theoretical refutation of Gnostc
physical Necessity, which arbitrarily deter- opinions, e.g. in bk. ii., is full of acute remarks.
mined the fortunes of men instead of a future
;
His main purpose is to repel the Gnostic
divine recompense according to the measure assault on the divine monarchia. He shews
of faith and works, a one-sided over-estimation that by the separation of the Creator from the
of mere knowledge as the one condition of highest God, the absolute being of God Him-
ultimate salvation ; instead of the original self is denied. Neither above nor beside the
Christian notion of the final consummation as Creator Himself can there be any other prin-
a series of great outward visible occurrences. ciple, for so God Himself would cease to be the
526 IRENAEUS IRENAEUS
all-embracing Pleroma, and being limited In the interest of the same absolute divine
from without would cease to be infinite. And Perfection and Unity, Irenaeus controverts
so again, if the Pleroma be separated from all the Valentinian doctrine of the Aeons. Be-
beneath it by an immeasurable discrepancy, a sides noting the arbitrary way in which the
third principle is introduced, which limits the Pleroma is made to consist of 30 Aeons, neither
other two, and is greater than both, and the more nor less (ii. 12, i 15, i 16, i), he finds
; ;

questions concerning the limiting and the fault with the anthropomorphic conceptions
limited become boundlessly insoluble. He behind the whole theory of emanations. The
urges similar arguments against the doctrine fact that the Propator Himself is reckoned as
of creative angels. If their creative energies an Aeon, the unemanate, unborn, illimitable,
are independent of the Godhead, God ceases to formless One placed in the same class with
be God ; if dependent upon Him, He is repre- emanations and births and limitations and
sented as needing inferior assistants. Against forms, destroys the absolute perfection of the
the assumption of a vacuum (K^voofia, aKia divine Nature (ii. 12, i). Again, the separa-
Kevdifiaroi) outside the Divine Pleroma, he tion from the Godhead of its own indivisible
remarks that, if the world be thought of as elements, the conception of the divine "Ecj'oia,
produced out of this void and formless sub- the divine Nous, the divine A.6yo^, etc., as so
stratum without the knowledge of the trpo- many hypostases, which in various stages have
TTaruJp, then the attribute of omniscience is issued from its bosom, is an unwarrantable
denied Him. Nor can it be explained why for transfer of human passions and affections to
such endless times He should have left that the divine, which, onthecontrary, is all "l^vvoia,
space thus empty. Again, if God did actually all NoCs, all A670J, and knows of no such divi-
beforehand form this lower world for Himself sion from itself (ii. 13). He subjects to acute
in thought, then was He its real creator. In criticism the manner in which each Aeon issup-
that case its mutability and transient duration posed to have been produced was it without
:

must have been fore-willed by the Father substantial separation, as the ray proceeding
Himself, and not be due to any defect or from the sun, or was it hypostatical, as one
ignorance on the part of an inferior maker. human being is personally distinct from all
The origin of the Kiutojxa also is incomprehen- others, or was it by organic growth, as the
sible. If it be an emanation from the Divine branch from the tree ? He asks whether these
Pleroma, that Pleroma itself must be burdened emanations are all of the same substance with
with emptiness and imperfection. If it be self- those from which they proceed and con-
originated, it is really as absolute as the Father temporaneous with them, or have come forth
of all Himself. Such a defect, again, in the in different stages ? Whether they are all
Pleroma, like a spot on a garment, would have simple and alike, as spirits and lights, or com-
been at once removed, in tlie very beginning, posite and corporeal and of various forms ?
had the Divine Father been able to remove it ;
(ii. 17, I sqq.). He insists on carrying to their
if otherwise, the blame of letting it remain so literal consequences the mythological con-
long must fall upon Him, and He will have to ceptions which regarded the Valentinian Aeons
be accounted, like the heathen Jupiter, re- as so many distinct personalities, produced
pentant over His own ways. Nay, if He was according to human analogy among them-
unable to remove this defect in the beginning, selves; and he offers the alternative, that they
He cannot remove it now. The imperfection must either be like their original Parent the
of this lower world leads back then to the Father and therefore impassible as He is (in
conclusion that there must have been some- which case there could be no suffering Aeon
thing void or formless, dark or disorderly, an like the Valentinian Sophia), or different from
element of error or infirmity in the Father Him in substance and capable of suffering,
Himself or in His Pleroma. The like thought upon which the question arises, how such
recurs in the further argument that the tem- differences of substance could come to exist
poral and transient could not have been made in the unchangeable Pleroma.
after the image of the unchangeable and So acute a polemic must have equally
eternal without introducing into it an alien served the interests of philosophy by its
element of mutability. The image must be maintenance of the absolute character of the
like its prototype, and not opposed to it, divine idea and of religion by its assertion of
and therefore tlie earthly material composite the divine monarchia. Irenaeus, like other
cannot be the image of that which is spiritual opponents of Gnosticism, was clearly con-
without drawing down the spiritual into its vinced that the whole system betrayed
own sphere of materialism. The same objec- influences of heathen thought. The theory
tion is made to the notion that the corporeal that everything must return to the originals
may be an image or shadow of the spiritual of its component parts, and that God Himself
world. It is only something corporeal that can is bound by this Necessity, so that even He
cast a shadow. Again, if it be maintained that cannot impart to the mortal immortality, to
the Creator could not make the world out of the corruptible incorruption, was derived by
Himself, but only after a foreign archetype, the the Gnostics from the Stoics the Valentinian
;

same mustbe trueoftheDivine Father. Healso doctrine of the Soter as made up from all the
must have derived, from someother source, the Aeons, each contributing thereto the flower
archetype of that higher world of which He was of his own essence, is nothing more than the
the maker, and so on. The question about Hesiodic fable about Pandora.
type andarchetype wouldthusbedrawnout in- Yet the Gnostics wished and meant to be
to infinity (ii. i-8). But inasmuch as we must Christians, and indeed set up a claim to
stop at some original at last, it is far more possess a deeper knowledge of Christian truth
reasonable to believe that the Creator and the than the Psychici of the church. Like their
OneonlyGodareoneandthesame(ii. i6, isqq.). opponents, they appealed to Scripture in proof
IRENAEUS IRENAEUS 527

of their doctrines, and also boasted to be in Revelation (iv.15 ; 15, i. ;19, i. etc.) the ;

possession of genuine apostolical traditions, literal fulfilment of its prophecies proves that
deriving their doctrines, some from St. Paul, it came from the same God as the N.T., and
others from St. Peter, others from Judas, is therefore of the same nature (iv. 9, i).
Thomas, Philip, and Matthew. In addition The prophets and the gospels together make
to the secret doctrine which they professed to up the totality of Scripture (" universae Scrip-
have received by oral tradition, they appealed turae," ii. 27, 2). That the Bible is one
to alleged writings of the apostles or their divinely inspired whole is thus clearly enun-
disciples. In conducting his controversy on ciated. Even Justin Martyr seems to regard
these lines with the Valentinians, Irenaeus the gospels rather as memoirs {aTro/uvri-
remarks first on their arbitrary method of /jLoveyuara) by apostles of the Lord's words and
dealing with Scripture and describes their
; actions than as canonical Scriptures ; but
mode of drawing arguments from it as a Irenaeus cites passages from the gospels as
" twisting ropes of sand" (i. 8, i ii. lo, i). ; inspired words of the Holy Spirit, using the
They indulge in every kind of perverse inter- same formulae of citation as for O.T. (iii.
pretation, and violently wresting texts out of 10, 4 ; 16, 2
; cf. ii. 35, 4 and 5), and similarly
their natural connexion put them arbitrarily from the epistles and Apocalypse (iii. 16, 9 ;

together again after the manner of the centos V. 30, 4). The two main divisions of the N.T.
made from Homer (i. He compares this
9, 4). canon are for him the gospels and the apostolic
proceeding to that of a bungler who has broken writings {to. evayyeXiKo. Kai to. d.Tro(no\iKd,
up a beautiful mosaic portrait of a king made i. 3, 6). These two already constitute a com-
by skilful artists out of costly gems, and puts plete whole, like the Scriptures of the O.T.,
the stones together again to form an ill- and he therefore blames the Ebionites for
executed image of a dog or fox, maintaining using only the gospel of St. Matthew, the
that it is the same beautiful king's portrait as Docetae only that of St. Mark, Marcion St.
before (i. 8, i). Since the Gnostics specially Luke's gospel only and the Pauline epistles,
exercised their arts of interpretation on our and even these not unmutilated (iii. 11, 7 and
Lord's parables, Irenaeus repeatedly lays 12, 12). He remarks that those " unhappy
down principles on which such interpretation ones " who reject the gospel of St. John cast
should be made (ii. 10, 2 ; 20, i sqq. ; 27, away also the divine prophetic spirit of which
I sqq.).Dark and ambiguous passages are not it contains the promise (iii. 11, 9). But he
to be cleared up by still darker interpretations equally condemns the use of apocryphal
nor enigmas solved by greater enigmas but ; writings. The teachers of Alexandria, with
that which is dark and ambiguous must be laxer notions about inspiration, made use of
illustrated b^' that which is consistent and such without scrupulosity. Irenaeus draws
clear (ii, 10, i). Irenaeus himself in inter- a clear line of demarcation between canonical
preting Scripture, especially when he indulges Scriptures and apocryphal writings. He
in allegory, is not free from forced and arbit- blames the Valentinians for boasting to
rary methods of exposition (cf. e.g. the inter- possess " more gospels than actually exist "
pretations of Judg. vi. 37, in Haer. iii. 17, 3 ;
(iii. II, 9) and the Gnostic Marcus for having
Jon. ii. I sqq. Haer. iii. 20, i Dan. ii. 34,
; used besides our Gospels " an infinite number
Haer. iii. 21, 7) ; but in opposition to the of apocryphal and spurious works " (i. 20, i).
fantastic interpretations which characterize He considers himself able to prove that there
the Valentinian school, he represents for the must be just four gospels, neither more nor
most part the historical sense of the written less. The proof is a somewhat singular one.
Word. His main purpose in the last three From the four regions of the earth, the four
books is to refute the Gnostics out of Scripture principal winds, the fourfold form of the
itself. Irenaeus quotes as frequently from cherubim, the four covenants made by God
N.T. as from O.T. Whereas formerly men with man, he deduces the necessity of one
had been content with the authority of fourfold gospel (iii. 11, 8). This gospel first
O.T. as the documentary memorial of divine orally delivered, and then fixed in writing,
revelation, or with the Lord's own words in Irenaeus designates the fundamentum et
addition to the utterances of law and prophets, columna fuiei nostrae (iii. i, i). The N.T.
they now felt more and more impelled, and canon of Irenaeus embraces nearly all now
that by the very example of the Gnostics received ; viz. the four gospels, twelve
themselves, to seek a fixed collection of N.T. epistles of St. Paul (the omission of Philemon
Scriptures and to extend to them the idea of appears to be accidental), I. Peter, I. and II.
divine inspiration. The Gnostics in their John, the Acts, and the Revelation. The omis-
opposition to O.T., which they supposed to sion of III. John is most probably accidental
have proceeded from the Demiurge or some also. From St. James there is probably a
subordinate angelic agency, had appealed to quotation at iv. 16, 2 (cf. Jas. ii. 23), and
writings real or supposed of the apostles as the frequently recurring expression " lex
being a more perfect form of divine revelation, libertatis " appears to have been borrowed
and the first point to be established against from Jas. i. 25. The possible references to
them was the essential unity of both revela- Hebrews are uncertain. Resemblances, per-
tions —
Old and New. Bk. ivi is almost wholly haps echoes, are found in several places (cf.
devoted by Irenaeus to the proof of this point Harvey's Index), and Eusebius testifies (H. E.
against Marcion. It is one and the same V. 26) that both Hebrews and the Wisdom of
Divine Spirit that spake both in prophets and Solomon are mentioned by Irenaeus in his
apostles (iii. 21, 4), one and the same Divine SiaX^feis 5id(popoi. The epistle is cited as a
Authority from which both the law and its Pauline work in one fragment only, the
fulfilraent in Christ proceeds. The O.T. second Pfaffian {Fr. Graec. xxxvi. ap. Harvey.)
contains presages and fore-types of Christian Irenaeus in his controversy with the Gnostics
528 IRENAEOS IRENAEUS
assumes the possibility that we might have apostolic truth (i. 10, 2 iii. 2, 2 3, i, 3, 4 ; ; ;

had to be without N.T. Scriptures altogether. 4, I seq. 24, I iv. 33, 7 seq. v. 20, i). ; ; ;

In this case we should have to inquire of the The learned church antiquarian Hegesippus
tradition left by the apostles of the churches had, c. 170, undertaken long journeys to
(iii. 4, i: "quid autem si nequeapostoli quidem assure himself of the general agreement of
Scripturas reliquissent nobis, nonne oportebat Christian communities in their doctrinal tra-
ordinem sequi traditionis quam tradiderunt lis ditions in each apostolic church he had set
;

quibus committebant, ecclesias ? "). But the himself to inquire for the unbroken succession
Gnostics also appealed to an apostolical tra- of its pastors and their teaching, and records
dition. Irenaeus complains that when one with satisfaction the result of his investiga-
would refute them from the Bible they accused tions " In every succession in every city
:

it of error, or declared the interpretation to it is still maintained as the law announces and
be doubtful. The truth can only be ascer- as the prophets and the Lord." And again,
tained, they said, by those who know the true " So long as the sacred choir of the apostles
tradition (iii. 2, i). But this teaching is still lived, the church was like a virgin un-
identical with that of Irenaeus himself, and defiled and pure, and not till afterwards in the
he insists on finding this true tradition in the times of Trajan did error, which so long had
rule of faith (Kavui/ ttj^ dXrjdeia^, Regula crept in darkness, venture forth into the light
Fidei), as contained in the Baptismal Confes- of day " (ap. Eus. H. E. iv. 22 iii. 32). ;

sion of the whole church (i. 9, 4 cf. 22, i).


; Irenaeus is specially emphatic in everywhere
Irenaeus thus obtains a sure note or token contrasting the vacillation and variety of
by which to distinguish the genuine apostolical heretical opinions with the uniform pro-
tradition (7; vtrb T-qs eKKXrjaias KTjpvaaou-ivri clamation of one and the same apostolic wiY-'^
a\7]deLa, i. 9, 5 praeconium ecclesiae, v. 20, 2 ;
;
ness in all the churches of the world (i. 8, i ;

aposiolica ecclesiae traditio, iii. 3, 3 ; or simply 10, i). Truth, he remarks, can be but one ;

TrapdSoffts, traditio, i. 10, 2 ; iii. 2, 2 and fre- while each heretical teacher proclaims a
quently) from the so-called apostolical secret different doctrine of his own invention. How
doctrine to which the Gnostics made their impossible is it that truth can have remained
appeal. The Baptismal Confession (or Credo) so long hidden from the church and been
acquired its complete form only through the handed down as secret doctrine in possession
conflicts of the Gnostic controversy. In the of the few She is free and accessible to all,
!

writings of Irenaeus, as in those of his contem- both learned and ignorant, and all who
poraries, it is cited in various, now longer now earnestly seek her find. With almost a shout
shorter, forms. This is no proof that one or of triumph he opposes to the unstable, ever-
other of these was the actual form then used changing, many-headed doctrinal systems and
in baptism. The probability is far greater that sects of Gnosticism, with their vain appeals
the shorter form of the old Roman credo still to obscure names of pretended disciples of the
preserved to us was that already used in the apostles or to supposititious writings, the one
time of Irenaeus. (Caspari, Ungedruckte, etc. universal norm of truth which all the churches
Quellen zur Geschichte des Taufsymbols und der recognise. " The church, though dispersed
Glaubensregel, tom. iii. 1875, pp. 3 sqq.) The through the whole world, is carefully guarding
variations as we find them in the creeds of the same faith as dwelling in one and the same
the Eastern churches appear to have been house ;these things she believes, in like
introduced in order to express, with greater manner, as having one soul and the self-same
distinctness, the antithesis of Christian belief heart ; these, too, she accordantly proclaims,
to Gnostic heresy. So here a special emphasis and teaches, and delivers, as though possessing
is laid on the belief in " One God the Father but one mouth. The speeches of the world
Almighty, Who made heaven and earth," and are many and divergent, but the force of our
in " one Jesus Christ, the Son of God, Who tradition is one and the same." And again:
became flesh for our salvation." This rule " The churches in Germany have no other
of faith Irenaeus testifies that the church, faith, no other tradition, than that which is
scattered over the whole olKovixevr), delivers found in Spain, or among the Celts, in the
as with one mind and mouth, even as she has regions of the East, in Egypt and in Libya,
herself received it from the apostles and their or in these mid parts of the earth." He com-
disciples(i. 10, i and 2). A clear, determinate pares the church's proclamation of the truth
note is thus given by which to distinguish to the light of the sun, one and the same
the genuine Christian tradition from that of throughout the universe and visible to all who
heresy. To the pretended secret doctrine of have eyes. " The mightiest in word among
the latter is opposed the public preaching the presidents of the churches teaches only
of the faith of the apostolic churches to the ;
the same things as others (for no one here is
mutability and endless varieties of Gnostic above the Master), and the weak in word
doctrines the unity of the church's teaching ;
takes nothing away from what has been de-
to their novelty her antiquity, and to their livered him. The faith being always one and
endless subdivisions into schools and parties the same, he that can say much about it doth
the uniformity and universality of her tra- not exceed, he that can say but little doth
ditional witness. That only which, from the not diminish " (i. 10, 2). " The tradition of
times of tlie apostles, has been handed down the apostles made manifest, as it is, through
in unbroken tradition by the elders of the all the world can be recognized in every
church and publicly and uniformly taught in "
church by all who wish to know the truth
the churches, that doctrine which at all times (iii. 3, i). But this light from God shines not
and in every place may be learned by inquiry for heretics because they have dishonoured
from the successors of the apostle in their and despised Him (iii. 24, 2). Cf. also the first
teaching office, that alone is the Christian of Pfafiian fragments (Fr. Grace xxxv.).
IRENAEUS IRENAEUS 529

The argument from antiquity is em- ment of monarchical episcopacy was a prirnary
also
ployed by Irenaeus on behalf of church tra- consequence of the conflict with Gnosticism,
dition. If controversies arise about matters and its origination out of simpler constitu-
of faith, let recourse be had to the most tional forms betrays itself in a mode of
ancient churches in which the apostles them- expression derived indeed from earlier times,
selves once resided and a decisive answer but still common to Irenaeus, with Tertullian,
will then be found. This oral apostolic tra- Clemens Alexandrinus, Hippolytus, and
dition exists even in the churches among others, the use, namely, of the official titles,
barbarous nations, in whose hearts the Spirit, irpea^vTepoL and iiricrKOTroi, to designate
without ink or parchment, has written the old alternately the same persons. Upeff^vrepoL
and saving truth (iii. 4, i and 2). But while in this context are, in the first place, " el-
thus the genuine tradition may, in the apos- ders," i.e. " ancients" or fathers, who repre-
tolic churches, be traced back through the sent the immediate connexion of the early
successions of the elders to the apostles them- church with the apostolic time. This name
selves, the sects and their doctrines are all or title is then transferred to the heads of
of later origin. There were no Valentinians churches, inasmuch as they in succession to
before Valentinus, no Marcionites before the apostles have been faithful transmitters
Marcion. Valentinus himself and Kerdon of what was handed down to them. The true
(Marcion's teacher) did not appear in Rome unbroken apostolical succession and prae-
till the time of Hyginus the ninth bishop after conium ecclesiae is therefore attributed to the
the apostles, Valentinus flourished under Pius, same persons, now as TrpeajivTepoi now as
Marcion under Anicetus (iii. 4, 3). All these iwicTKOTroL (iii. 3, 2, cf. iii. 2, 2 iv. 26, 2, 4, 5
; ;

founders of sects were much later than the Ep. ad Victorem ap. Eus. H. E. v. 24) ; nay,
apostles (iii. 21, 3) and the first bishops to in so many words, the " successio episcopalis "
whom they committed the care of the churches
was assigned to the irptcrjivTepoi (iv. 26, 2).
(v. In contradistinction to their
20, i).
By these " presbyters," however, we are
xpevSihvvnos yvihais the true gnosis consists in
certainly to understand heads of churches
the doctrine of the apostles and the mainten- (especially those of apostolic foundation),
ance of the pure and ancient constitution of who alone were capable of acting as the guar-
the church (t6 dpxatov ttjs ^/c/fXvjcrias crvcTri/xa) dians and maintainers of church unity. The
throughout the world (iv. 33, 7). The main episcopate is for Irenaeus no mere congre-
point then, on which all turns, is the clear gational office, but one belonging to the whole
proof of a pure transmission of apostolic teach- church ; the great importance attached by
ing through immediate disciples of the apostles his contemporaries to the proofs of a genuine
themselves and their disciples after them. apostolical succession rests on the assumption
What is the tradition of the elders {Trpea^vTai, that the episcopate was the guardian of the
irpetTjSvTepoi), i.e. the heads of apostolic church's unity of teaching, a continuation, in
churches who stood in direct communication fact, of the apostolic teaching-office, ordained
with the apostles themselves or with their for that purpose by the apostles themselves.
disciples ? — is the question, therefore, which The bishop, in reference to any particular
Irenaeus is everywhere asking. These elders congregation, is a representative of the whole
are the guardians and transmitters of the Catholic church, the very idea of catholicity
apostles' teaching. As in the preceding being indebted for its completion to this more
generation Papias had collected the traditions sharply defined conception of the episcopal
of " disciples of the Lord," so now Irenaeus is office. In the episcopate thus completely
collecting reminiscences of their disciples, formed the Catholic church first manifested
mediate or immediate, a Polycarp, a Papias, herself in organic unity as " the body of
and as Hegesippus had been careful to
etc., Christ." As formerly the apostles, so now
inform himself as to the succession of pastors the bishops, their successors, are the " ecclesia
from apostolic times, so Irenaeus, in opposi- repraesentativa." Only through the epis-
tion to the doctrines of the Gnostics, appeals copate as the faithful guardian and trans-
not only to the ancestral teaching maintained mitter of the apostolical tradition do such
in churches of apostolic foundation, such as congregations retain their hold on visible
Rome, Smyrna, Ephesus, but also to the lists church unity and their possession of the
of those men who, since the apostles, had truth (cf. iv. 33, 7). The significance of the
presided over them (iii. 3). episcopal ofiice rests therefore on the fact of
The main representatives therefore of an apostolical succession, and on this historical
genuine apostolical tradition are for Irenaeus connexion of the bishops with the apostolic
the bishops of the churches as successors of era depends the certainty of their being
the apostles and guardians of their doctrines. possessed of the true tradition. That this
In the episcopate, as a continuation of the assurance is not illusory is proved by the
apostolic office, he finds the one sure pledge actual uniformity of church teaching through-
of the church's unity and the maintenance out the world, the agreement of all the apos-
of her doctrine. Although the expression tolic churches in the confession of the same
iKK\r)ffia KadoXiKri, which came into vogue to- truth (iii. 3, 3). Beyond this historical proof
wards the end of the 2nd cent., does not occur of the church's possession of the true teaching
in his writings, the thing itself is constantly through her episcopate, the argument is not
before him, i.e. the conception of one true carried further by Irenaeus. The later dogma
church spread over the earth, and bound to- of a continua successio Spiritus Sancti, i.e. of
gether by the one true Faith, in contrast to an abiding special gift of the Holy Spirit
the manifold and variegated and apostate attached to the episcopate of apostolical suc-
forms of " heresy." Its external bond of cession, has nevertheless some precursive
unity is the episcopal of&ce. The develop traces in his writings. Though the Holy

530 IRENAEUS IRENAEUS


Spirit a scala ascensionis ad Deum, of which
is when he singles out the continuance of spirit-
all the faithful are partakers, yet the guidance ual gifts as a special note of the true church,
of the church by the Spirit is mediated by meaning thereby not merely the charisma
apostles, prophets, and teachers, and they but also the gifts of prophecy and
veritatis.
who would have the guidance of the Spirit miracle (ii. 32, 4; cf. iii. 11, 9). He is not less
must come to the church. " For, where the decided in opposing schismatics, who destroy
church is, there is the Spirit of God, and where the church's unity (iv. 26, 2 ; 33, 7), than
the Spirit of God is, there is the church and heretics who corrupt her doctrine.. In internal
all grace —
the Spirit, moreover, is the truth " divisions among the faithful he never wearies
(iii. 24, i). Expressly therefore is the " char- in urging the interests of peace. Neither in
isma veritatis" attached to the episcopal the Montanistic movement nor in the Paschal
succession (iv. 26, 2), not as a gift of inspira- controversy does he see grounds for the
tion enabling the bishops to discover fresh severance of church communion. At the
truths, but rather as such guidance as enables same time he determinedly opposes that
them to preserve the original truth. There- separatist temper, which, denying the presence
fore it is more particularly the churches of of the Spirit in the church, would claim His
apostolical foundation, and in the West gifts exclusively for its own sect or party.
specially the church of Rome, which can Even if we are not warranted in identifying
give the surest warrant for the true and with the Montanists those " false prophets "
incorrupt tradition. In this sense the much- of whom he speaks (iv. 33, 6) as with lying lips
disputed passage is to be understood in which pretending to prophesy, any more than those
some would find a witness for the primacy who (iii. II, 9) deny the gospel of St. John
of the Roman church " For with this church
: all the more applicable to them is the following .

must, on account of her more excellent origin description :


" Men who bring about schisms,
('propter potiorem principalitatem,' i.e. 61a devoid of true love to God, seeking their own
rriv Sia(popu)T^pav dpxvv), every church, that is, advantage rather than the unity of the church ;

all the faithful coming from all quarters, put wounding and dividing for petty reasons the
themselves in agreement, as being the church great and glorious body of Christ, and so far
in which at all times by those who come from as in them lies destroying it ; speaking peace,
all quarters the tradition derived from the but acting war, and in sober truth straining
apostles has been preserved " (iii. 3, 2). The out the gnat and swallowing the camel. For
potentior principalitas denotes here not only no reformation which they could bring about
the superior antiquity of the Roman church would outweigh the evils produced by their
as the greatest, oldest, and most widely known schism " (iv. 33, 7). The great importance
(i.e. in the West, where Irenaeus was writing), attached by Irenaeus to the maintenance of
but also her nobler origin as founded by those church unity rests for him on the assumption
" two most glorious apostles Peter and that the church being sole depositary of
Paul."
The mention of the " faithful coming from all divine truth is the only trustworthy guarantee
quarters " points again to the position of the of human salvation. While himself sharing,
great world's metropolis as a centre of inter- with the Montanists, not only the hope of the
course, and therefore the place in which millennial kingdom but also the expectation of
Christians could most easily convince them- its outward visible glory (v. 32-36) and delight-
"
selves of the oneness of apostolical tradition ing in reminiscences of what the " elders
in the whole church. Obscurations and cor- (Papias) have handed down concerning it as
ruptions of that tradition, quite possible in from the lips of the apostle St. John (v. 33, 3),
remoter churches, would at Rome be soonest Irenaeus does, on the other hand, with his
discovered and most easily removed. It is conception of the church as an outward visible
not of any Roman lordship over other churches institution of prime necessity for human sal-
or a prunatial teaching-office committed to the vation, pave the way for that catholic ideal,
Roman bishop that Irenaeus is here speaking, which, in contrast to the dreams and aspira-
but only of the surer warrant offered by the tions of Montanism, would substitute for a
position of that church for the uncorrupt glorious vision of the future the existing
maintenance of the apostolical traditions. church on earth as God's visible kingdom.
So, after reckoning the succession of Roman When the visible church as an outward insti-
bishops down to Eleutherus, his own contem- tution comes to be regarded as the essential
porary, Irenaeus proceeds rj? avr^ rd^ei kuI
:
medium of saving grace, all its forms and
TV? aiJTTJ diadoxr}, ij re dwd tQv dirocTTdXwi' if
ordinances at once acquire a quasi-legal or
iKK\7)(jla wapaSoaii kuI
sacramental character. The church is for
Tfl rb t^s d\r)0€lai
Irenaeus an earthly paradise, of the trees of
Kripvyfj-a eh ri/uai (iii. 3, 3).
KaT-qvTTjKtv
But just the same he says of the church of which every one may eat, while heresy has
Ephesus founded bySt. Paul, and till the times only the forbidden tree of knowledge, whose
of Trajan under the guidance of St. John: fruits are death-bringing (v. 20, 2). As the
dWd Kui i] iv 'E(f)ia(xj iKKXrjaia vwd YlavXav fx^v church's faith is the only faith which is true
and saving (iii. praef.), so is he alone a Chris-
TeOe/xf\iu)/j.ipr]. 'Iwdvvov Si wapaixtlvavTO's
avTots tian man who conforms to the church's insti-
P^XP^ T^v Tpaiaj-ou XP^^^V, ixdpTvs dXyjd-qs iari tutions and laws (cf. iii. 15, 2 v. 20, i). ;

TTJs dirocToXiKTJ'i Trapa56(Tewi (iii. The church's sacrifices, the church's prayers,
3, 4).
The unity of the Catholic church, thus the church's works alone are holy (iv. 18,
secured by the continuance of the apostolic I sqq. ii. 32. 5). ;

office, is regarded by Irenaeus as mainly a This essentially legal conception of Chris-


doctrinal unity. Of her guardianship of tianity was also that of the generation which
sacramental grace he gives hints only. Yet followed the apostles. The great Catholic
be is certainly on the way to that conception doctors gave to this legal conception of the
IRENAEUS IKENAEUS 631
church a further development. For Tertul- (iv- 5. 5 ; 9, I ; 16, 2 ; 21, i), his legal con-
lian, Clement, and Origen the work of Christ ception is still there. Faith is opposed by
was primarily the promulgation of a new Irenaeus to the \j/ev^{hvvfj.o's yvwati of the
divine law. Irenaeus calls indeed Christianity heretics, and essentially consists in the recep-
the N.T. of freedom (iii. 12, 14 iv. 16, 5 ; ; tion of the Regula Fidei, the Rule of Faith it ;

34, 3 ;cf. iii. 10, 5), but simply in reference to is therefore simply defined as obedience to the
the exemption of Gentile Christians from will of God (iv. 16, 5), i.e. a moral duty, and
obedience to the Mosaic ceremonial law. In not, as for St. Paul, the subjective form in
antithesis to Marcion, who derived the Mosaic which a new religious life and relation is first
law from the Demiurge, the gospel from the constituted.
good God, Irenaeus maintained the substan- Thislegal conception leads Irenaeus further
tial identity of both covenants ("unius et to insist on the freedom of the will, and on
ejusdem substantiae sunt," iv. 9, i cf. 9, 2 ; ;
salvation as conditioned by a man's own
13, 3, etc.). When he appropriates the ethical self-determination. All Catholic prac-
Pauline antithesis of bondage and liberty (cf. tical theology tends to limit the free forgive-
also iv. 9, I seq. 13, 2 16, 5
; 18, 2 34, i
; ; ;
ness of sins to the moment of baptism, and
seq., etc., etc.), the religious premises which led after that to make salvation dependent on a
up in St. Paul's mind to that antithesis are godly life and the performance of good works.
perhaps wanting to Irenaeus. The N.T. In the same spirit Irenaeus quite innocently
him in a body of divine prescripts.
consists for puts in juxtaposition justification by obedience
The bondsman and undisciplined has indeed to the naturalprecepts and justificationby faith:
one law, the free, the justified by faith, another " naturalia legis per quae homo justificatur
(iv. 9, i) but inasmuch as the nucleus of both
; quae etiam ante legislationem custodiebant
Testaments is one and the same namely, those — qui fide justificabantur et placebant Deo" (iv.
natural precepts (naturalia praecepta) (iv. 13, 13, i). He is led thus strongly to insist on
4 cf. 15, i) which have from the beginning the moral law by his opposition to the Gnostic

;

impressed themselves on the mind of man it teaching that the spiritual man is exempted
follows that the evangelical law of liberty (iv. from it and obtains salvation through his
34, 4) differs only quantitatively, not quali- higher gnosis. His energetic assertion of the
tatively, from that of Moses. This difference freedom of the will has also a polemical object
consists on the one hand in the abolition of the — to refute the Valentinian dualistic doctrine,
precepts of the ceremonial law, which for the which made the salvation of the spiritual man
Israelites themselves had but a temporary the result of his original pneumatic nature (cf.
purpose and validity, to restrain from idol esp. iv. 37). But this perfectly justifiable
worship, to uphold external discipline, or to opposition leads Irenaeus to put too much in
serve as precursors and symbols of spiritual the background the doctrine of divine grace
precepts (iv. 13, 2 ; 14, i sqq. ; 15, i ; 16, as the only source of human salvation. He
3 sqq. ; 19, i ; 23, i seq. ; 24, i seq.), and on even puts it as a divine requirement that in
the other in the reinforcement of those natural order to the Spirit's resting upon them. Chris-
precepts which have come down to us from tians must, beside their baptismal vocation,
the beginning (iv. 9, 2 13, i 16, 5). The
; ; be also adorned with works of righteousness
laws of liberty {decreta lihertatis) do not annul (iv. 36, 6). This seems inconsistent with the
the duty of obedience the difference between
; Pauline teaching that it is only by the gift of
sons and servants from this point of view the Spirit that Christians are enabled to do
consists in the sons having a larger faith (iv. good works at all. But, on the other hand,
32, 2) and exhibiting a more ready obedience he says that the Spirit dwells in men as God's
(iv. II, 4). Accordingly, the antithesis be- creation, working in them the will of the
tween the two Testaments is not an antithesis Father and renovating into the newness of
of fear and love. Love is the greatest com- Christ (iii. 17, i). As dry ground, without
mandment under the O.T. (iv. 12, 3). Fear dew from heaven, can bear no fruit, so neither
continues as a precept under the New. Christ can the soul perform good works without the
has even enlarged the precept of fear the — irrigation of the water of life (iii. 17, 2).
children must fear as well as love more than If in his legal conception Irenaeus may be
the servants (iv. 16, 5). On the one side the said to anticipate the mode of thought which
children indeed are free, on the other they characterizes the Catholicism of a later time,
are still servants (iv. 14, i). The two law- the same cannot be said of his teaching on the
givings differ only in the number and great- sacraments. Indeed the sacramental side of
ness (muUitudine et magnitudine) of their Catholic theology did not take shape till
commandments. The law of liberty, being through and after the Montanistic and Nova-
the greater, is given not for Jews onlv, but tianist controversies. Whereas both these
for all nations (iv. 9, 2) but the precepts of ; parties insisted on finding the church's sanc-
a perfect life (consummatae vitae praecepta) tity in the spiritual endowments and personal
"
are for both Testaments the same (iv. 12, 3). holiness of individual members, " Catholics
The new precepts which characterize Chris- sought for the note of holiness mainly in the
tianity are, in the first place, the ordinances church's sacramental ordinances, or in mar-
and institutions of the church. Among other vellous operations of the Holy Spirit in certain
distinguishing notes of the new law Irenaeus functions of her public life. The chief organ
further emphasizes that Christians believe not of these operations would be the episcopate,
in the Father only but also in the Son, that which thus came to be viewed as not merely
they do as well as say, and that they abstain the guardian of doctrinal purity, but also the
from evil desires as well as from evil works bearer of supernatural grace and powers, and
(iv. 13, i). Even while largely using Pauline following the type of the O.T. priesthood as a
language in speaking of Justification by Faith kind of mediator between God and men. This
632 IRENAElid IRENAEtlS
side of the Catholic ideal of the church is not
yet developed in the writings of Irenaeus. On
— Justin, Theophilus, Tatian, AthenagoraS,
the Alexandrine Clemens, Origen, Tertullian,
the contrary, he insists on the original Chris- and Hippolytus— found the doctrine
in the of
tian conception of the universal priesthood Divine Logos the classical expression which
and outpouring of the Spirit on all believers they needed for the unique and absolute
(iv. 20, 6 sqq. v. 6, i
; cf. iv. 13, 2 sqq. character of the gospel revelations. It was
;
33, ;

I sqq.), first, as against the Gnostics, and their in antithesis both to the Gnostic doctrine of
claims to an exclusive possession of the divine Aeons and the psilanthropism of the Ebionites
vyeufia, and, secondly, against the false that the Divine Logos or Eternal Thought of
prophets, and their denial of the presence of God Himself was conceived of as the personal
the Spirit in the church (iii. 11, iv. 33, 6). organ of all divine revelation Which had
9 ;

The sacramental idea of grace imparted issued from the inner life of the Divine Pater-
through the church is for Irenaeus restricted nity. His manifestation in the flesh is there-
to baptism as a divine institution for the sal- fore the climax of all the revelations of God
vation of man, the type of which is the ark in the world. This Logos-doctrine Irenaeus
of Noah (iv. 36, 4). Of priestly absolution and adopted. The invisible Father is visible in
Its sacramental significance he nowhere the Logos (iv. 20, 7). The divine " Pleroma "
speaks on the contrary, he adopts the (Irenaeus borrows the Gnostic term to express
;

saying of an elder which has a somewhat the fulness of divine perfection, ii. i, 3 seq.) is
Montanistic rmg about it— that after baptism revealed therein. God Himself is all Intelli-
there is no further forgiveness of sins (iv. what He thinks
27, gence, all Thought, all Logos ;

2). This, as is clear from the


epistle of the He utters, what He utters He thinks the. ;

Galhcan confessors, not meant to exclude


is all-embracing divine intelligence is the Father
the possibility of indulgence being extended Himself, Who has made Himself visible in the
to the fallen under any circumstances. The Son (ii. 28, 5). The infinite, immeasurable
familiar thought of the Ignatian epistles, that Father is, in the words of some old teacher of
separation from the episcopal altar is a separa- the church, become measurable and compre-
tion from the church herself, also finds no hensible in the Son ("immensus Pater in Filio
distinct utterance in the writings of Irenaeus. mensuratus"), for the Son is the " measure of
But in his time the ministration of the Euch- the Father," the manifestation of the Infinite
arist by bishops and presbyters was undoubt- in finite form (iv. 4, 2). In contrast with
edly a long-established custom. In regard to Tertullian, Irenaeus's first great purpose and
the dogma of the Holy Communion Irenaeus, object is to emphasize the absoluteness and
like Justin Martyr, expresses the thought that spirituality of God, and therefore to reject
through the invocation of Christ's name over anything like a physical emanation (prolatio)
the earthly elements the Divine Logos does of the Logos, lest God should be made into
actually enter into such mysterious connexion something composite, and something other
with the bread and wine as to constitute a than His own infinite thought (principalis
union of an earthly and a heavenly trpa-yfxa mens), or His own Logos (ii. 28, 5). The older
similar to that which took place at the Incar- teachers of the Logos-doctrine conceived the
nation Itself. In virtue of this union of the generation of the Logos after the analogy of
Logos with the bread and wine those earthly the temporal process from thinking to speak-
substances are made the flesh and blood of ing, and assumed that His issuing from the
Christ ; and it appears to have been with Father as a distinct person, i.e. the out-
Irenaeus a favourite thought, that through the speaking of the inward divine thought, first
partaking of Christ's flesh and blood in the took place at the creation. Tertullian repre-
Holy Communion our earthly bodies are made sented the same conception in a more sensuous
partakers of immortality (iv. 18, 4seq.
33, 2;
;
form. The Father is for him the whole
V. 2, 2 seq. ; cf. also iv. 17, 5 seq.;18, i sqq., Godhead, the Son " portio totius " and on
;

and the second Pfaffian fragment, Fr. Graec. this point he expressly recognizes the resem-
xxxvi. ap. Harvey). blance between his view and that of the
The chief significance of Irenaeus as a theo- Gnostics (c. Drax. 8). Irenaeus, on the
logian consists in his doctrine concerning the other hand, is driven lay his own opposition to
Person and Work of Christ. The doctrine of the Gnostic doctrine of Aeons to reject any-
Christ's Godhead was for the Gentile Chris- thing like a tt/do^oXtj or prolatio from the God-
tianity of the post-apostolic age the theo- head as a limitation of His infinity or an
logical expression of the absolute significance anthropomorphism. He is therefore the first
of that divine revelation which was enshrined doctor of the church who maintained with the
in His person and work. While the Gnostics utmost distinctness the eternal coexistence of
regarded Christ as only one among numerous the Son with the Father ("semper coexistens
eradiations of the divine essence, therebv Filius Patri," ii. 30, 9; iii. 18, i). Hisfrequent
imperilling on the one hand the truth of the designation of the Son and Holy Spirit as the
divine monarchia, and on the other the abso- " Hands of God " is a figurative expression to
lute and final character of the gospel revela- denote Their being not so much emanations of
tion, the opposing doctrine of the Godhead of the Godhead as organs of its creative energy.
the Logos, and of His Incarnation in Jesus To presumptuous endeavours to comprehend
Christ, provided the exact theological truth the way in which the Son comes from the
and formula of which the Christian conscience Father he opposes our human ignorance, and
felt the need, in order to gather into one the mocks at the vain attempts of those who would
scattered elements which the multitude of transfer human relations to the Infinite and
Gnostic Aeons were dividing. Following the Unchangeable One (" quasi ipsi obstetricaverint
guidance of St. John's gospel, the more prolationem enunciant," ii. 28, 6). These
philosophically cultured teachers of the church polemics, if directed primarily against the
IRENAEUS IRENAEUS 533

Gnostics, are not less applicable to the distinguished from the Logos as another divine
emanistic theories of other teachers. On hypostasis, " progenies et figuratio Dei" (iv. 7,
the other hand, the clearly marked division 4 ; 20, I seq.) the latter, where the Spirit is
;

between the Logos-doctrine of an Hippolytus spoken of as " the bread of immortality " (iv.
and TertuUian and the Patripassian concep- 38, i) and the life-giving principle from which
tion of it can hardly be said to exist for endless life wells forth (v. 12, 2). It is with
Irenaeus, who often speaks as if the eternal this latter meaning that Irenaeus, speaking of
Logos were but the self-revealing side of the the humanity of Jesus Christ, expresses a
otherwise invisible and hidden Godhead, thought, often recurred to by later theologians,
without one's being always able to see how that the Spirit is the anointing {unctio, XP^^P-"-)
the personal distinction between the two can and bond of unity between the Father and the
be thus maintained. His doctrine of the Son. The Holy Spirit is in fact, for him, also
Logos was developed (unlike that of TertuUian the uniting principle between God and man.
and Hippolytus) without any direct reference God through the Spirit imparts Himself to
to Patripassianism (of which no mention is man man through the Incarnation enters
;

made in his writings), while the true human into God (v. i, i). This last thought leads us
personality of the Son is maintained against on to the grand conception which Irenaeus
the Gnostics with as much decision as His true entertains of the development of the whole
Godhead against the Ebionites. human race from Adam up to Christ. Man
His conception of the Logos as the one great was not from the first, according to Irenaeus,
and absolute organ of all divine revelations made perfect and immortal, but designed, in
leads Irenaeus, as it did Justin Martyr and the God's purpose concerning him, to become so.
other Apologists, to refer back to His agency But this can only be through the Spirit of
all the pre-Christian manifestations of God (iv. God, and in order that man may be made
20, 7 seq.). But Irenaeus is the first Christian partaker of the Spirit and thereby united to
doctor who expressly applies this thought, in God, it was necessary that the Logos should
his conflict with the Gnostics, to the origina- become incarnate (iv. 38, i sqq.). The image
tion of the Mosaic law (iv. 9). " Both Testa- God {ilxCcv Tov iieov), for which man was
of
ments proceeded from one and the same head created, could not become visible before the
of the familv {paterfamilias), our Lord Jesus Incarnation, and so man lost this image, the
Christ, the Word of God, Who spake (of old) likeness of God, the possession of the Spirit
to Abraham and to Moses " (cf. iv. 12, 4). (v. 16, 2), falling into sin by his own fault, and
But Irenaeus nowhere maintains the precepts thereby coming not only under the power of
of the old ceremonial law as obligatory upon natural death, but rendered incapable of
Christians. exhibiting the image of God (v. 12, 2 23, ;

The fulfilment of all previous revelations is I seq.). Thus though Irenaeus regards sin,
attained in the personal manifestation of the not like the Gnostics as a necessity of nature,
Logos in the flesh. By the Incarnation of the but as man's own free act, he yet works out
Son the divine purpose in creation, the union the thought that God has permitted the exist-
{adunatio, communio, commixtio) of God and ence of evil because only by the contrast could
man, has been accomplished, and the end is goodness be appreciated, like health after
brought back to the beginning (iv. 20, 2, 4 ; sickness, light after darkness, life after death
33, 4 ; V. 2, I, et passim). (iv. 37, 7 ; 39, i). Without sin there would
Together with the Logos the Spirit of God is have been no consciousness of need, no desire
often spoken of as an organ of divinereyelation. for union with God, no thankfulness for His
It is not, however, easy to determine their mercy (iii. 20, i sqq.). The chief aim of
right relation one to the other. The designa- Irenaeus in these disquisitions is again his
tion of the Holy Spirit as Wisdom [Sapientia) conflict with Gnostic error, especially that of
reminds us of the Alexandrine phraseology, in Marcion, who explained the origin of evil in
which X670S and (rofia. are also distinguished the universe by the theory of two Gods the —
without the distinction being fully worked out highest and an inferior one. Irenaeus appro-
or consistently adhered to. Irenaeus uses the priates the language of the prophet (Isa. xlv.
term " Sapientia " of the Divine Spirit always. 6, 7), / am the Lord: I make peace, and create
But the comprehension of his meaning is made evil, and works out the thought that for the
somewhat difficult by his sometimes speaking very sake of destroying evil a final recapitula-
of our communion with the Son as mediated tio totius iniquitatis may be necessary (v. 29,
by the Spirit (v. 36, 2), and sometimes of the 2). Two equally significant thoughts must be
historical manifestation of the Logos as the distinguished in the full doctrine of Irenaeus
mean whereby men become partakers of the concerning the Incarnation of the Logos and
Spirit of the Father (iv. 38, 2). The solution the divine purpose in the Incarnation the :

probably is that Irenaeus uses the term idea of humanity being raised to perfection
" Spirit of God" in now a narrower, now a in Christ through union with the divine nature,
wider sense. In the narrower sense the Spirit and that of the victory gained by humanity
is the organ of Divine Revelation in the heart in the God-man its Head over sin and the devil.
and consciousness of man, and so distinguished The Incarnation is for Irenaeus not merely
from the Logos as the universal organ of an historical fact, but has for its basis the
Divine Revelation to all creatures and all eternal divine predestination of man. It was
worlds (v. I, I cf. iii. 21, 4
;
iv. 33, i, 7,
; only by God becoming man that man could
etc.). In the wider sense the Spirit is the attain the predestined end of his original
inner Being of God Himself in contradistinc- creation. The perfecting of humanity in
tion to the material universe and the ffap^ Christ is also a realisation of the true idea of
(caro) or human corporeity. The former sense —
humanity the Logos first assimilating Him-
is always to be assumed where the Spirit is 1 self to man, and then man to Himself ("semet
534 IRENAEUS IRENAEUS
ipsum homini et hominem
sibimet ipsi assimi- the stages of an ordinary human
through all
lans"). " In past times it was said indeed that life in order to consecrate each of them in us,
man had been made after God's image, but it by a likeness to Himself in each (ii. 22, 4 iii. ;

was not shewn. For the Logos was still 18, 7), and that He should come at the end
invisible after Whose image man had been of time in order to conduct all who from the
made. And on this very account did man beginning had hoped in Him to eternal life
also easily forfeit the likeness. But when in fellowship with God (iv. 22, i seq. cf. 27, ;

the Logos of God became flesh He established i). As Christ was typically pre-formed in
both points He truly exhibited the [divine] Adam (iii. 22, 3), so was Adam's destiny ac-
:

image, by Himself becoming that which was complished in Christ (v. i, 3 16, 2 seq.). The ;

the image of Himself, and firmly restored the Spirit of God descended on the Son of God
likeness by making man to be like the unseen made man that in Him He might accustom
Father " (v. i6, 2). Man's destination is to be Himself to an indwelling in the human race
like God, and by the attainment of this like- (iii. 17, i). Man was to grow used to receive
ness God's great purpose is accomplished of God, and God to indwell in man (ii. 20, 2).
indwelling in man, and so of uniting man to With this thought of the recapitulatio of the
Himself (iii. 20, 2). Hence follows the neces- human race in Christ is combined another of
sity that He by Whom the perfecting of man equal depth and significance that of the vic- —
was accomplished should be Himself both God tory over sin and deliverance of sin's captives
and man. Irenaeus is therefore as strongly from the power of Satan by the obedience of
opposed to the Ebionitic as to the Docetic Christ. This deliverance or redemption was
error. To the Ebionites he objects that they necessary before the divine purpose of the
do not receive the doctrine of the commixture union of God and man could be accomplished;
of the heavenly wine with the earthly water, For if man, created by God for life, but cor-
the union of God and man, but, retaining the rupted by the serpent, had not returned to
leaven of the old birth (after the flesh), abide life, but been wholly subjected to death's
in mortal flesh and in that death which dis- power, God would then have been defeated,
obedience has incurred (v. i, 3 iii. 19, i).; and the devil's iniquity proved itself stronger
It was necessary that the Logos should be- than His holy will. But God, triumphant and
come man in order that man, receiving the magnanimous, has by the second Adam
Logos and obtaining the sonship, might be- (Christ) bound the strong man and spoiled his
come son of God. We could not obtain in- goods, and deprived death of its prey, and
corruption and immortality except by being brought back man once slain to life. He who
united to that which is incorruptible and im- by false promises of life and the likeness of
mortal. Only through the absorption of the God had bound man in the chains of sin has
one by the other can we become partakers of now been justly made captive in his turn, and
the divine Sonship (iii. 19, i cf. iii. 18, 7).
; his prisoner, man, set free (iii. 23, i seq. cf. ;

On the other hand, in opposition to Gnostic 18, 7 iv. 21, 3). The power of the devil over
;

Docetism, Irenaeus insists no less strongly on man consisted in man's sin, and the apostasy
the reality of the Incarnation of the Logos. into which the devil had seduced him (v. 21, 3),
If this were but putative, salvation would be but now the disobedience of one man has been
putative also (iv. 33, 5). The mediator be- repaired by one man's obedience (iii. 18, 7 ;

tween God and man must belong to both in 21, 10). The first Adam was initium morien-
order to unite both (iv. 18, 7). If we are tium, the second Adam initium viventium,
truly to know God and enter into fellowship Who needed to be both God and man, no less
with the Divine Logos, our teacher must Him- in order to become the saviour than to be the
self have become man. We need a teacher perfecter of mankind (iii. 22, 4 v. i, 3). ;

Whom we can see and hear, in order to be Only One Who was Himself man could over-
followers of His deeds and doers of His words come man's enemy, and bind in his turn him
(v. I, i). —
This fundamental thought that by whom man had been bound
the divine nature of which we are to be par- alone could the victory over the enemy be
in this way ;

takers can be brought nigh to us only in the altogether just. So, on the other hand, only

form of a genuine human existence is ex- One Who was also God could accomplish a
pressed elsewhere still more emphatically, redemption which should be stable and sure
when Irenaeus insists that Christ, in order (iii. 18, 7 v. 21, 3). Christ must be truly
;

to conduct the human race to its divine man to be as man truly tempted, must be
destination, must Himself belong to it, and born of a woman to deliver those who by a
take upon Him human flesh and all the char- woman had been brought under the devil's
acteristics of humanity that if man is to be power, and must truly live and suffer as a man
;

raised to God, God must come down to man in order as man to fight and triumph. Again,
(iv. 33, 4, TToJs S.v0pwwos x'^P'?"'" "'5 Q(ov, He must also be the Logos in order to be
ei /at; 6 Heij ex^^pV^V "5 AvOpunrov). The glorified, in order as the strong one to over-
second Adam, the head of our spiritual hu- come the enemy in whose power the whole
manity, must Himself come of the race of human race found itself (iii. 18, 6, 7 19, 3 ; ;

Adam in order to unite the end with the iv. 33, 4 v. 17, 3 21, I 22, i) and finally,
; ; ; ;

beginning (iii. 22, 3 seq. 23, i iv. 34, 4


; ;that man might learn that it is not through
;

v. I, 3 16, I seq.).
; The profound conception himself but only through God's mercy that
of a recapitulatio {dvaKecpaXaiojais) of human- he obtains incorruption (v. 21, 3). The re-
ity in Christ is one to which Irenaeus per- capitulation of mankind in Christ consists
petually recurs. (See iii. 18, i 22, i, 3 ; ;
therefore not only in man's original destiny
23, I ; iv. 38, I v. i, 2 seq.
; ; 14, i; 23, 2; 36, being accomplished by the beginner of a new
3 ; cf. iv. 40, 3 v. 16, 2).
; It was needful humanity, but also in His taking up and
that Christ should recapitulate and pass conducting to a triumphant issue, at the end
IRENAEUS IRENAEUS 535
of time, the conflict wherein, at the beginning, devil deceived himself with the hope of bring-
man had been overcome. The victory of God ing under his power One Whom he was too
made man is man's victory, since all humanity weak to hold, is not found in Irenaeus. But
is summed up (recapitulated) in Christ. Man along with this conception of the redemption-
must himself leave the evil one bound with price offered to the devil appears another
the same chains wherewith he himself had thought, that man has been reconciled to God

been bound the chains of transgression (v. by the sacrifice of the body of Christ and the
21, 3) ;but the first man could not thus have shedding of His blood (v. 14, 3).
triumphed, having been by him seduced and It must be allowed that Irenaeus gives no
bound, but only the second man, the Son of complete dogmatic theory with regard to the
God, after Whose image Adamwas created, and nature of Christ's work of redemption, for
Who has become man in order to take back his theological speculations nowhere appear
His old creation (" antiquam plasmationem ") as an independent system, but are simply
into Himself (iv. 33, 4). The devil had ob- developed in polemical contrast to those of
tained his dominion over the first man by the heretical gnosis. By this conflict with
deceit and violence whereas the redemption
; Gnosticism the currents of Christian religious
of the new race had taken place not with thought were once more put in rapid move-
violence but, as became God, by free persua- ment and problems whicli had exercised St.
sion ("secundum suadelam, quemadmodum Paul were again before the church.
decebat Deum suadentem, non vim infer- A new letter of St. Irenaeus of considerable
entem, accipere quae vellet," v. i, i). The importance was discovered in 1904 by an
dominion of the devil is an unjust dominion, Armenian scholar in the Church of the Virgin
for he, like a robber, has seized and taken to at Erivan in Russian Armenia, and trans, into
himself what did not belong to him, estranged German with notes by Dr. Harnack (1907).
us from our original godlike nature, and made It was written to his friend Marcian and pos-
us into his own disciples. Divine justice de- sibly intended as a manual for catechising
mands that what the devil has obtained by (Drews, Der lit. Cliarakier der neuernt deck-
conflict should in a lawful conflict be won back ten Schrift des Iren. 1907). For an account
from him. The Son of God deals, according of it see Essay VI. in Dr. Knowling's Messi-
to His own sense of right, with the apostasy anic Interpretation (S.P.C.K. 191 1).
itself, redeeming from it, at a price, that which —
Literature. The Vita Irenaei of Feuardent
was His own("nondeficiensinsua justitia juste and that of Peter Halloix the Dissertationes
;

etiam adversus ipsam conversus est aposta- in Irenaeum of Dodwell and those of Massuet ;

siam, ea quae sunt sua redimens ab ea," v. i ;


the Prolegomena of Harvey (Preliminary
i; cf. 24, 4). Christ came not snatching with Matter, I. Sources and Phenomena of Gnostic-
deceit that which was another's, but justly and ism ; II. Life and Writings of St. Irenaeus) ;

graciously resuming that which was His own ;


Tillemont, Memoires. iii. 77 sqq. and 619 sqq. ;

justly in regard to the apostasy (the evil one) Lipsius, Die Zeit des Irenaeus von Lyon und
from whose power He redeemed us with His die Entstehung der altkatholischen Kirche in
own blood, and graciously in reference to us Sybel's Histor. Zeilschrift, xxviii. pp. 241 sqq.;
whom He so redeemed (v. 2, i). The per- Lightfoot, The Churches of Gaul, in Contemp.
suasion (suadela) of which the Son of God made Review, Aug. 1876, pp. 405 sqq. ; the post-
use consisted, so far as the devil was con- humous work of Dean Mansel, The Gnostic
cerned, in his free consent to accept the re- Heresies of the First and Second Centuries
demption price of the Lord's death for his (London, 1875). Some translations of Iren-
prisoners and so the Lord redeemed us,
; aeus are in the Ante-Nic. Fathers, and bk. iii.
giving His soul for our souls and His flesh for of adv. Haer. has been trans, by H. Deane
our flesh (v. i, i). Two thoughts are here to with notes and glossary (Clar. Press). A
be distinguished. The first is that of Christ's critical ed. of adv. Haer. is pub. by the Camb.
victorious conflict with the evil one, maintain- Univ. Press in 2 vols. [r.a.l.]
ing, spite of all his temptations, full and entire Irenaeus (7), count of the empire and sub-
obedience to the Father, unmasking Satan as sequently bp. of Tyre, while a layman took
rebel and deceiver, and thereby proving Him- a zealous interest in theological controversies
self the strong one (v. 21, 2 seq.). The second and was ardently attached to the cause of his
is that of redemption through Christ's blood, personal friend Nestorius. In 431 Irenaeus
which is expressly represented as a price paid unofficially accompanied Nestorius to the
to the devil and by him voluntarily received. council of Ephesus (Labbe, Concil. iii. 443).
The first thought is developed mainly with employing his influence in behalf of his friend
reference to the temptation in the wilderness. to the great irritation of Cyril and his party
In the third temptation the evil one is com- (ib. 749, 762; Baluze, 496, 524). When, five
pletely exposed and called by his true name, days after Cyril had hastily secured the con-
the Son of God appears as victor, and, by His demnation of Nestorius, the approach of John
obedience to the divine command, absolves of Antioch and the Eastern bishops was an-
the sin of Adam (v. 21, 2). With this chain nounced, Irenaeus, accompanied by a guard of
of thought, complete in itself, the other theory soldiers, hurried out to apprise them of the
of a redemption-price paid in the blood of high-handed proceedings of the council. He
Christ, is placed in no connexion. It is not was followed by deputies from the council,
said that the devil, acting up to his rights, who, as Memnon relates, were at the count's
caused the Saviour's death, which indeed is instigation maltreated by the soldiers, and
represented from another point of view as a prevented from having an audience with John
price legitimately offered and paid down to (Labbe, ib. 764 ;Mercator, ii. praef. xxvu.).
him (v. I, i). The thought, moreover, sub- To counteract the influence of Dalmatius and
sequently worked out by Origen, that the the monastic party at Constantinople, the
536 IRENAEUS ISAACUS I.

Eastern bishops deputed Irenaeus to proceed entirely from the scene. The Latrocinium in
thither with letters to the emperor and the 449 confirmed his deposition, after that of
leading officers of state, narrating their side Ibas and Daniel of Charrae, and passed an
(Labbe, ib. 717-720). Irenaeus obtained an anathema on him (Martin, Actes du Brigandage,
audience of Theodosius, and his statement of pp. 82-86 ; Evagr. //. E. i. 10). As Irenaeus
the proceedings was so convincing that Theo- is not mentioned at the council of Chalcedon,
dosius was on the point of pronouncing the he was probably no longer alive.
condemnation of Nestorius illegal, when the During the latter part of his career Irenaeus
arrival of John, the Syncellusof Cyril, entirely enjoyed the friendship and confidence of
frustrated his efforts. Theodoret, who speaks highly of his ortho-
The decree of Theodosius which banished doxy, magnanimity, liberality towards those
Nestorius, Aug. 435, pronounced the same in adversity, especially those who had known
sentence against Irenaeus and a presbyter better times, and of his other virtues {Ep. 35,
named Photius, as propagators of his impiety. no), and wrote him frequent letters.
Stripped of his honours, his property confis- Irenaeus's great historical work, the Tra-
cated, he was deported to Petra (Baluz. p. goedia, has unfortunately perished and is only
884, c. clxxxviii, clxxxix.), and passed 12 years known to us from an ill-executed Latin
in his Arabian banishment without once par- translation of large portions of it, made sub-
ticipating in Christian ordinances. His time sequently to the time of Justinian by a parti-
was spent in the preparation of a history of san of" the Three Chapters." The anonymous
the troubled scenes in which he had taken translator, who has given very little more
part, known as the Tragoedia Irenaei. The than the letters and other documents, in-
invectives in this work against Theodoret, valuable for the light thrown on the trans-
Ibas, and all who had questioned Nestorius's actions of the period, together with the
perfect orthodoxy, render it probable that it summaries of Irenaeus and some interpola-
was written early in his banishment, and that tions and explanations of his own, sometimes
the lapse of time brought calmer thoughts. barely intelligible, entitled his work Synodicon.
His doctrinal views seem also to have received Tillem. Mem. eccl. xiv. 606-608, 613, 614
some modification during this period, for at et passim; xv. 264-266, 578, 579 et passim;
its close the banished heretic suddenly re- Cave, Htst. Lit. i. 437 ; Le Quien, Or. Christ.
appeared as the unanimous choice of the ii. 807 ; Labbe, Concil. torn. iii. passim; Bal-
bishops of the province of Phoenicia for the uze, Nov. Coll. Concil. passim Abbe Martin,
;

vacant metropolitical see of Tyre, their choice Le Brigandage d'Ephese, pp. 82-95, 183. [e.v.]
being ratified by the leading members of the Isaacus (7) I., St. [Sahag the Great,
episcopate of Pontus and Palestine and ac- Parthev the Parthian), catholicos of the
cepted with warm commendation by Proclus of church of Greater Armenia for 40 or 51 years,
Constantinople. The date of his ordination 390-441. Moses of Khorene states that he
as bp. of Tyre must have been before the end belonged to the house of the founder of the
of 446. Since the reconciliation of John of Armenian church, Gregory the Illuminator.
Antioch and Cyril, a kind of truce had existed His long patriarchate is remarkable for the

between the two parties the Egyptians and invention of the Armenian characters by

Orientals which this elevation of a leading Mesrob, the translation of the Scriptures into
Nestorian sympathiser to the episcopate ren- the Armenian language, and the commence-
dered no longer possible. Irenaeus had been ment of the golden age of Armenian literature ;

consecrated by Domnus, the patriarch of for the revision of the Armenian liturgy, first
Antioch, who, therefore, was the first object translated from the Greek by Gregory, which
of attack. He was plied with missives from has continued unaltered ever since in the
the dominant clerical party at Constantinople, Armeno-Gregorian church ; and for the
asserting that the election of a convicted destruction of the independence of Armenia.
heretic and a digamns was ipso facto null and At the commencement of his patriarchate
void and charging him under severe threats Isaac visited the Persian king at Ctesiphon,
to proceed to a fresh election. The emperor's where, on behalf of his sovereign, he acknow-
name was adroitly kept in the background ledged Armenia to be tributary to Persia.
;

but it was implied that the malcontents were Owng to the troubled state of the country he
acting with his sanction. Domnus turned for was virtually ruler for several years. In 428,
counsel to Theodoret, who replied that " it from which date Armenian chronology be-
was better to fall under the ill-will of man than comes more certain (St. Martin, Mem. sur
to otfend God and wound one's own con- V Armenie, i. 320, n.), the Persian king deposed
science." But the ruin of Irenaeus had been Ardaces IV., the last of the Armenian Arsaci-
resolved on, and Theodosius was compelled to dae, and Isaac retired into Western Armenia,
seal with his imperial authority the act of either by order of the Persian monarch or
deposition. An edict was issued (Feb. 17, through the enmity of the satraps of his own
448), renewing those formerly published country, whom it is said he had offended by
against the Nestorians, and commanding that refusing to join in their plans. Whilst in
Irenaeus should be deposed from his see, Western Armenia (428-439) he sent Mesrob to
deprived of the dress and title of priest, com- Constantinople with letters to Theodosius II.,
pelled to live as a layman in his own country and the general Anatolius, who was com-
and never set foot again in Tyre. Domnus, missioned by the emperor to build the city of
unwilling to consecrate a successor, sought to Theodosiopolis (called Garin by the Arme-
temporise, until fear of ulterior consequences nians, Erzeroumby the Turks), near the sources
prevailed over his scruples, and Photius was of the Euphrates, as a place of refuge for
made bp. of Tyre, Sept. 9, 448 (Actes du Isaac. Meanwhile the Persian kings set up
Brigand, pp. 134, 143), and Irenaeusdisappears others as patriarchs in his stead, but at length.

ISAACUS NINIVITA ISAACUS 537

the Armenian satraps repented and invited every rational soul can approach unto God
Isaac to resume his throne. This he refused viz. love, fear, divine training. He who has
to do, but appointed one administrator in his gotten love feeds on Christ at all times, and
stead, according to some Mastentzes, accord- becomes immortal (John vi. 52). Sermons 8,
ing to Moses of Khorene Samuel, nominated 47, 48 (B. M. cod. 694) treat of the alternations
by the Persian king. After the death of his of light and darkness, the deep dejection and
vicar he seems to have partially resumed his sudden ecstasy to which anchorites were
episcopal functions over the whole Armenian subject.
community. On account of the patriarch's holy reading and prayer " infer tibi violen-

For the former Isaacus prescribes

expulsion, the archbp. of Cappadocian tiam ad orandum, et praestolare auxilium, et


Caesarea disallowed the ordination of bishops, veniet tibi te ignorante." Serm. 23 is directed
which had been conceded to Isaac but by the against those who asked. If God be good, why
;

influence of the Persians all connexion between did He create sin, Gehenna, Death, and Satan?
Armenia and Caesarea was from this time forth Elsewhere Isaacus says that there is a natural

broken off a fact which tended towards the faculty whereby we discern good from evil, to
isolation of the Armenian church. Isaac did lose which is to sink lower than one's natural
not attend the general council of Ephesus. state and this faculty precedes faith, and
;

He died at the age of no years, being the last leads us thereto. There is also a faculty of
Armenian patriarch of the family of Gregory spiritual knowledge which is the offspring of "
the Illuminator he was followed to the grave faith. He explains the " many mansions
;

in six months by his friend Mesrob. Moses of heaven as meaning the different capacities
of Khorene, bk. iii. cc. xlix.-lxviii., in Langlois, of the souls abiding there —
a difference not of
Hist, de I'Armenie, ii. 159-173 ;St. Martin, place but of grace.
Mem. sur VArmenie, i. 437 Galanus, Hist.
;
Zingerle (Mon. Syr. i. 97 sqq.) has published
Arm. c. vii. Le Quien, Oriens Christ, i. 1375
; ;
Serm. 31, On the natural offspring of the virtues,
Malan, Life of St. Gregory, p. 28. [l.d.] and Serm. 43, On the various grades of know-
Isaaous (14) Ninivita, anchorite and bishop ledge and faith. Other titles are. On the differ-
towards the end of the 6th cent. An anony- ences of revelations and operations in holy men ;
mous Life prefixed to his works states that he In how many ways the perception of things
was by birth a Syrian, and, with his brother incorporeal is received by the nature of man
who became abbat, entered the great monas- (B. M. cod. 694, 14 and 24) That it is wrong
;

tery of St. Matthew at Nineveh. Afterwards without necessity to desire or expect any sign
he retired to a lonely cell, where he long manifested through us or to us (do. 695, 46).
remained. Isaac's fame as an anchorite be- A short tract, de Cogitationibus (wepl
came so great that he was raised to the XoyLcr/jiwv), attributed to this Isaacus, is given
bishopric of Nineveh, which, however, he in Migne, vol. Ixxxvi., along with the de Con-
resigned on the very day of his consecration, temptu Mundi. A book, de Causa Causarutn
owing to an incident which convinced him or Liber Generalis ad Omnes Gentes, treating of
that his office was superfluous in a place where God and the creation and government of the
the gospel was little esteemed. Feeling also universe, has been assigned to this Isaacus ;
that episcopal functions interfered with the it really belongs to Jacobus Edessenus (fl. 710),
ascetic life, he finally retired to the desert of see Pohlmann, Zeitschr. d. Morgenland.
Scete or Scetis, where he died. Lambecius Gesellsch. (1861), p. 648.
{Comment, lib. v. pp. 74 sqq.). Cave (Hist. Lit. Cf. Wright's Cat. Syr. MSS. in Brit. Mus.
i. 519) and others confuse him with another vol. ii. pp. 569-581 de Contemptu Mundi in
;

Isaacus Syrus. Migne, Patr. Curs. Gk. Ixxxvi. pp. 811-885 ;


Works. Ebedjesu (Cat. p. 63) writes that
" he composed seven tomes on spiritual guid-
Assem. Bibl. Orient, i. 444-463, iii. 104, etc.
Fabric. Biblioth.
;

Cave, Hist. Lit. i. 519 ;

ance, and on divine mysteries, judgments, Graec. xi. 1 14-122 Harl. Casimir Oudin,
;

and government." A considerable number, Comment, de Scriptor. Eccl. i. coll. 1400- 1405 ;
though not all, of these discourses are extant Ceillier, xii. 100. [cj.b.]
in Syriac, Arabic, and Greek MSB. in the Isaacus (21), a Donatistwho, together with
Vatican and other libraries. Fifty-three of Maximianus, met his death at Carthage in
his homilies were rendered from Greek into consequence of the cruel punishment inflicted
Latin, c. 1407, by a monk who freely abridged by order of the proconsul of Africa, a.d. 348.
and altered the order of his original. In this The history is related by a fellow-Donatist
form they appear in the various Bibliothecae named Macrobius and though he does not
;

Patrum, as a continuous treatise entitled de mention the name of the proconsul, doubtless
Contemptu Mundi, uniformly but wrongly the tragedy took place in connexion with the
attributed to Isaacus Antiochenus. mission into Africa of Paulus and Macarius.
He is much quoted by the old Syrian writers. The narrative is told in barbarous Latin and
His style teems with metaphor his matter is a rhetorical style so turgid as to suggest the
;

often interesting, both theologically and suspicion of exaggeration in the details. But
historically. He treats mainly of the ascetic these, horrible as they are, agree too well with
life, its rules and spiritual experiences. what we know to have taken place in other
Watching, fasting, silence, and solitude are cases. Maximianus suffered first, but Isaac
means to self-mastery. There are three provoked the anger of the judges by his

grades of anchorites novices, proficients, and taunting exclamations and was forthwith
the perfect. The worth of actions is gauged compelled to undergo a treatment no less
by the degree of the love of God which inspires brutal. Having been first scourged with
them. By the thoughts which stir within, a " plumbata," a whip armed with leaden
man may learn to what grade of holiness he bullets, and then beaten with sticks, they were
has risen. There are three methods by which both cast into prison, but Isaac disappointed
I
,

638 ISAACUS ISAACUS


the further violence of his tormentors by 358, and attached himself to Macarius of
death. This took place on a Saturday. Alexandria, the disciple of St. Anthony.
Crowds immediately flocked to the prison, Palladius relates of abbat Isaac that he knew
singing hymns as if it were the eve of Easter, the Scriptures by heart, lived in utter purity,
and they watched beside the corpse to ensure and could handle deadly serpents (xepdiTTai)
it Christian burial. To disappoint this without harm. He lived in solitude for 50
intention, the proconsul on the day following years, his followers numbering 150. Certain
gave orders that both the living man and the anecdotes in the Apophthegmata Patrum
dead body should be cast together into the appear to belong to him. " Abbat Isaac was
sea. To execute this command, the soldiers wont to say to the brethren, Our fathers and
were obliged to clear the way from the prison abbat Pambo wore old bepatched raiment and
by force, and many persons were wounded in palm husks ((re/36'ta) nowadays ye wear
;

the struggle. The two victims were thrown costly clothing. Hence It was ye who
!

into the sea at some distance from each other desolated the district." (Scetis was overrun,
in baskets weighted with sand to ensure their 0- 395, by the Mazices, a horde of merciless
sinking. But the action of the waves, caused, savages.)
according to thewriter's belief, by divine inter- Cassianus, who was in Scetis a.d. 398, con-
position, tore away the sand, and after six versed with Isaacus, to whom he assigns the
days brought the two bodies together to shore, 9th and loth of his Conferences (Collationes)
where they were received with welcome by which treat of prayer. In the former Isaacus
their fellow-Christians on their way to the distinguishes four kinds of prayer, according
churches and received Christian burial, the to I. Tim. ii. i (Collat. 9, cc. 9-14)- Then he
malice of those who had sought to deprive expounds at length the Lord's Prayer (cc:
them of it being thus gloriously defeated. 18-23). The highest type, however, is
Notwithstanding the inflated style of the prayer " unuttered, unexpressed," like that
narrative (very different, as Mabillon remarks of Christ on the mountain or in the garden
truly, from that of the existing accounts of the (c. 25, de qualitate sublimiorts orationis). In
deaths of true Catholic martyrs), and notwith- c. 36 he advises short and frequent petitions
standing the very slight notice St. Augustine ("frequenter quidem sed breviter"), lest, while
takes of the event, into which he acknowledges we linger, the foe suggest some evil thought.
that he had made very little inquiry, and also The loth Conference begins by relating how
despite his evident success in convicting some the patriarch Theophilus of Alexandria scan-
accounts of Donatist martyrdoms of in- dalized the Scetic anchorites by his Paschal
accuracy, if not of direct falsehood, there Letter denouncing Anthropomorphism, and
seems no reason for doubting the substantial how the aged abbat Serapion, though con-
truth of this narrative, especially as Marculus, vinced of his error, could not render thanks
in Dec. of the same year, suffered death for a with the rest, but fell a-weeping and crying,
similar cause and with similar circumstances " They have taken my God from me " !

of cruelty. Neither can we doubt that the Cassianus and the other witnesses asked
cause for which these men suffered was Isaacus to account for the old man's heresy.
essentially one of religion. True, St. Augus- Isaacus made it a survival of heathen ideas of
tine compares such cases to that of Hagar, and Deity in a simple and unlettered mind (cc.
elsewhere argues in favour of the duty of the 1-5). Isaacus proceeds to shew how to attain
state as the guardian of truth to repress to perfect and unceasing prayer. That will
heresy and insinuates that those guilty of this be realized when all our love and desire,
offence are punished not so much on account every aim, effort, thought, all that we con-
of religion as of treason or disloyalty ; but template, speak of, hope for, is God when we
;

we must bear in mind that (i) the proceedings are united with Him by an enduring and in-
here related took place six years before St. dissoluble affection. C. 10 gives as a prayer
Augustine's birth, and had not been repeated suited to all emergencies the verse Ps. Ixx. i.
in his time, and that thus he was no witness Ill prays he who only prays when upon his
either to the truth or falsehood of the narra- knees. He prays never, who even upon his
tives ; (2) the behaviour and language of knees is distracted by wandering thoughts.
Isaac remind us more of an angry partisan Such as we would be found when praying, such
than a Christian martyr (3) the glaring faults
; should we be before we pray.
of the narrative in style and temper do not When 50 years old Isaacus was expelled
extenuate the treatment which, after every from his desert by Theophilus of Alexandria,
allowance for exaggeration, the sufferers must albeit that prelate had made bishops of seven
have endured. Aug. Tr. in Joann. xi. 15 ;
or eight of his anchorites. Isaacus turned for
c. Cresc. iii. 49, 54 ; Mabillon, Vet. Anal. succour to St. Chrysostom and Olympias. He
p. 185 Mon. Vet. Don. No. 29, pp. 237, 248, was still living in a.d. 408.
;

ed. OberthUr ; Ceillier, v. 106; Morcelli, Sources. — Pallad. Dialog, de Vita Chrysost.
Cassiani Massil.
Africa Christiana, ii. 249. [h.w.p.] in Patr. Gk. xlvii. 59, 60;
IsaacUS (28). Several eminent solitaries of Collat. 9, 10, in Migne, xlix. 770 sqq. Apoph-
;

the Egyptian deserts in the 4th cent, bore this thegmata Patr. ib. Ixv. 223; a number of
name. The references are scattered up and anecdotes headed tov 'Afi^a 'JaaaK tov
irepl

down in the Vitae Patrum, and it is not always wpta-fBvT^pov Twi> KeWlooy, but referring to
clear which Isaac is intended. The following several persons, cf. de Vit.Patr. lib. iii. col. 752,
seem to be distinct persons. in Migne, Ixxiii. Tillem. Mem. viii. 650, 617,
;

(i) Abbat IsaaCUS, presbyter of the anchor- 648, and 813, n. vi. Ceillier, viii. 174-177.
;

ites in the Scetic desert [v Z/c^ris, Copt. (ii) Isaacus, presbyter and abbat of the
Schiet), S.VV. of Lake Mareotis. At 7 years Nitrian desert, sometimes called Presbyter of
of age he withdrew from the world, a.d. the Cells (KeXXia N. of Nitria). The chief
"

ISAACUS ISAACUS ANTIOCHENUS 539


account of this Isaacus is also in Palladius outside my cell, my mind grows dark
(Dialog. Migne, xlvii. coll. 59, 60). He was {Apoph. Patr. col. 241). fc.j.B.]
head of 210 recluses. His charity and humil- Isaacus (29) Senior, mentioned in an anony-
ity were famous. He built a hospital for the mous Life of Ephraim the Syrian among the
sick and for the numerous visitors to his more distinguished disciples of Ephraim who
community. Like Isaacus of Scetis, he was were also SjTiac writers. He is cited by
an adept in the Scriptures. Like him, too, Joannes Maro {Tract, ad Nest, et Eutych.), by
after 30 years in the desert, he was driven forth Bar-hebraeus {Hist. Dynast, gi), and by many
c. 400 by the patriarch Theophilus, who had other Syriac and Arabic authors, most of
chosen a number of his disciples to be bishops. whom, however, confuse him with Isaac pres-
The Apophthegmata Patruni gives some stories byter of Antioch (Assemani, B. O. i. 165).
about Isaac of the Cells. " The abbat Isaac Gennadius in his de Scriptor. Eccl. c. 26, says
:

said. In my youth I lived with abbat Cronius. " Isaac wrote, concerning the Three Persons
Old and trembling as he was, he would never of theHoly Trinity and the Incarnation of the
bid me do anything ;he would rise by him- Lord, a book of very dark disputation and
self, and hand the water-cruse (t6 jiavKaXiov) involved discourse proving that there are
;

to me and the rest. And abbat Theodore of three Persons in the one Godhead, each pos-
Pherme, with whom also I lived, would set out sessing a proprium peculiar to himself. The
the table by himself and say, Brother, if thou
'
proprium of the Father is that He is the origin
wilt, come and eat.' I said, Father, I came
'
of the others, yet Himself without origin ;
to thee to profit : why dost not bid me do that of the Son is that, though begotten, He is
somewhat ? '
He answered never a word ;
not later than His begetter that of the Holy
;

but when the old men asked him the same Ghost is that It is neither made nor begotten,
thing, he broke out with, Am I Coenobiarch,
'
and yet is from another. Of the Incarnation
that I should command him ? If he like, he writes that two Natures abide in the one
what he sees me doing, he will himself do.' Person of the Son of God." This chapter
Thenceforward I forestalled the old man's precedes those about Marcarius and Evagrius
purposes. And I had learned the lesson of Pontinus, who lived ante 400. It is hence
doing in silence." inferred that Isaac flourished about the end
It appears that, after the persecution of of the 4th cent. (Cave, i. 415, places him
Theophilus, Isaacus had returned to his c. 430 (?), but some put him a century earlier.)
desert. In the Apoph. Patr., Migne, t. Ixv. The work of Isaac, not unfairly described
223, 239, there are other anecdotes concerning by Gennadius, is entitled Lihelltis Fidei SS.
him (cf. Tillem. Mem. viii. 623-625). Trinitatis et Incarnationis Domini. It is a
(iii) Isaacus, called Thebaeus, an anchorite brief treatise, and is printed in Migne, Patr.
of theThebaid, probably not identical with (ii), Gk. xxxiii. In a codex Pithoeanus, teste
although Cronius, the master of the Cellia, at Sirmond, the title is Fides Isaacis (or Isacis)
one time lived in theThebaid (Vit. Patr. lib. ex Judaeo. Hence Isaac Senior has been
vii. col. 1044, Migne, t. Ixxiii.). Alardus identified by Tillemont (viii. 409) with Isaac
Gazaeus, the Benedictine annotatorof Cassia- the converted Jew who calumniated pope
nus, writes (Collat. g ad init.) that there were Damasus. Assemani thinks that the silence
two chief anchorites named Isaac one who of Gennadius and his epitomizer Honorius
;

lived in the Scetic desert, and another called renders it doubtful that Isaac Senior, the
Thebaeus, often mentioned in the Vitae author of the Libellus Fidei, was a Jew. Cf.
Patrum and in Pratuni Spirituale, c. 161. also Galland. vii. Prol. p. xxv. Ceillier, vi.
;

Once Isaac (" de Thebaida," Vit. Patr. v.) 290 Mansi, iii. 504 b
; Pagi, Crit. ad ann.
;

had banished an offending brother from the 378, XX. [C.J.B.]


congregation. When he would have entered Isaacus (31) Antiochenus, born at Amid
his cell, an angel stood in the way. " God (Diarbekir) in Mesopotamia, called " the
sends me to learn where you wish Him to Great " and " the Elder," a priest of Antioch
bestow the solitary whom you have con- in Syria, said to have visited Rome. His
demned." The abbat owned his fault and teacher was Zenobius the disciple of St.
was forgiven, but was warned not to rob God Ephraim, not (as Cave) Ephraim himself.
of His prerogative by anticipating His judg- The Chronicle of Edessa speaks of him as an
ments. Isaac Thebaeus used to say to the archimandrite, without specifying his monas-
brethren, " Bring no children hither. Four tery, which was at Gabala in Phoenicia. He
churches in Scetis have been desolated, owing died c. 460. He is sometimes confused with
to children." Isaacus of Nineveh. Bar-hebraeus {Hist.

Sources. Apoph. Patr. col. 240, in Migne, Dynast, p. 91) unjustly brands him as a heretic
Ixv. ; de Vit. Patr. lib. v. in Migne, Ixxiii. and a renegade. He was author of numerous
(version of an unknown Greek author by works in Syriac, of which the chief were
Pelagius, c. 550), coll. 909, 918 de Vii. Patr. polemics against the Nestorians and Euty-
;

iii. col. 786 (prob. by Rufinus). chians, and of a long elegy on the overthrow
(iv) Isaacus, disciple of St. Apollos, probably of Antioch by the earthquake of 459. He
lived at Cellia. He was accomplished in every also wrote a poem on the Ludi Seculares, held
good work. On his way to the church he by Honorius in his sixth consulship (a.d. 404),
would hold no converse with any, and after and another on the sack of Rome by Alaric
communion he would hurry back to his cell, (a.d. 410). Jacobus of Edessa reckons him
without waiting for the cup of wine and among the best writers of Syriac. His poems
the food {Tra^aixdrtjs) usually handed round are extant in MSS. in the Vatican and other
among the brethren after service. " A lamp European libraries. Many of them are wrong-
goes out, if one hold it long in the open air ly ascribed to St. Ephraim, and included
;

and if I, kindled by the holy oblation, linger amongst his works in the Roman edition. In
540 ISCHYRAS ISDIGERDES I.

discourse No. 7 Isaacus speaks of relic- pseudo-bishop Colluthus (2), but no one out
worship and holy days. Besides Sunday, of his own family believed him, as he never
many Christians observed Friday, the day of had a church, and no one in the neighbourhood
the Passion. No. 9 attacks prevalent errors looked on him as a clergyman (74, 75). He
on the Incarnation. Here Isaacus seems to never attended ecclesiastical assemblies as a
fall into the opposite heresies, failing to dis- presbyter (28). In spite of the synod, he con-
tinguish Nature from Person but elsewhere
; tinued to act as a presbyter, and was doing
he uses language unmistakably orthodox. this in the cottage of Ision when Athanasius,
Assemani thinks his words have been tam- being on a visitation in the Mareotis, sent his
pered with by Jacobite copyists. No. 24, presbyter Macarius to bid him desist. When
Christ suffered as man, not as God. No. 50 Macarius reached the house, Ischyras was
touches on future retribution " The fault is
: reported ill in his cell or in a corner behind the
temporal, the punishment eternal." This door (28, 63, 83), certainly not officiating at
aims at those Syrian monks who had adopted the Eucharist (41). This occurrence may be
the opinion of Origen on this subject. No. 59 assigned to c. 329, between the latest date
is a hymn asserting, against the Cathari or (June 8, 328) possible for the consecration of
Novatianists, that fallen man recovers inno- Athanasius and Nov. 330, when the troubles
cence not only by baptism, but also by peni- broke out. Ischyras on his recovery went
tence. No. 62 is a hymn of supplication, over to the Meletians, in conjunction with
lamenting the disasters of the age, e.f;. the whom he framed his accusation against
inroads of Huns and Arabs, famine, plague, Macarius (63), and through Macarius against
and earthquake. Johannes Maro quotes two Athanasius. In the spring of 331 (see vol. i.
discourses not found in the Vatican MSS. p. 184, and Hefele, ii. 13) the three Meletians,
The first, on Ezekiel's chariot, clearly asserts accused Macarius at Nicomedia of having
two natures and one person in Christ " duo : broken a chalice, overturned a holy table,
aspectus, una persona duae naturae, unus
; and biurnt service books on the occasionof
salvator." Similarly, the second, on the In- his visit. As his friends became ashamed of
carnation. Bickell printed both, so far as he him (63), Ischyras confessed the fabrication to
found them extant (S. Isaac. Op. i. 50, 52). the archbishop and implored forgiveness (16,
The library of the British Museum possesses 28, 63, 74). This would be in mid-Lent 332.
about 80 of the discourses, hymns, prayers, In the summer of 335 Ischyras, having mean-
etc., of St. Isaacus in MSS., ranging from the while been gained over by the Eusebians,
6th to the 12th cent. Dr. Bickell, in the revived the accusation before the council of
preface to his edition of the works of Isaac, Tyre (13), and accompanied the synodal com-
gives a list of 178 entire poems, and of 13 mission to the Mareotis to investigate its
others imperfect at the beginning or end (179- truth (27). For his reward his Eusebian
191) ; three prose writings dealing with the patrons procured (85) an imperial order for the
ascetic life (192-194) ;
five sermons in Arabic, erection of a church for him at a place called
on thelncarnation, etc. (195-199); andasermon Pax Secontaruri, and the document recog-
in Greek, on the Transfiguration, usually nized him as a " presbyter." They after-
assigned to St. Ephraim (200). wards obtained for him the episcopal title (16,
See S. Isaaci Antiocheni opera omnia ex 41), and he figures as bp. of Mareotis among
omnibus quotquot exstant codd. MSS. cum varia the bishops assembled at Sardica in 343 (Socr.
lectione Syr. Arab, primus ed. G. Bickell, vol. ii. 20; Soz. iii. 12, here " Ischyrion "). He
i. 1873, ii. 1877 ; Gennadius, Vir. Illustr. 66 ;
afterwards withdrew to Philippopolis (Hilar.
Assem. Bibl. Orient, i. 207-234 Cave, Hist. ; Frag. iii. in Patr. Lai. x. 677 a Mansi, iii. 139),
;

Lit. i. 434 ; Ceillier, x. 578 Wright's Cat. Syr.


; at which synod his name is corruptly written
MSS. Brit. Mus. General Index, p. 1289. Quirius. No other instance of a bp. of Mare-
The poems of Isaac are important for the otis occurs. Le Ouien, 0>-. C^y. ii. 530. [t.w.d.]
right understanding of the doctrines of the Isdigerdes {{) I. {Jezdedscherd, Yazde-
Nestorians, Eutychians, Novatianists, Pela- Urdus, Yezdegerdes; "i<T5cy(p5r]s and'lcdf^^pdTj^
gians, and other sects besides being au-
; by the Greeks in Armenian Yazgerd; on
;

thorities for the events, manners, and customs his coins, ^DIDIT', i-c- Izdikerti), king of
of the writer's age. [c.j.b.] Persia, surnamed Al Aitham (the Wicked),
IschyraS (2) (Ischyrion, Soz.), Egyptian known in history as Isdigerd I., though
pseudo-presbyter and finally bishop a slan-
; an obscure and uncertain predecessor of
derer of Athanasius. His story, which begins the same name makes Mordtmann reckon
under the predecessor of Athanasius, is made him as Isdigerd II. Rawlinson thinks the
out from scattered passages in the Apol. c. best evidence favours 399 for the commence-
Arian., and a slight outline is given by So- ment of his reign, and 419 or 420 for his death.
crates (i. 27). He belonged to a hamlet in the He was son of Sapor III., succeeding his
Mareotis too small for a church of its own brother Vararanes IV., and succeeded by his
(§ 85, ed. Migne) and there had a conventicle son Vararanes V. He reigned at Ctesiphon.
attended by seven persons at most (77, 83). With the Romans he appears to have lived in
He did not bear a good moral character (63) peace Agathias (Hist. iv. 26, p. 264, ed. Bonn,
;

and was once charged with insulting the 1828) and Theophanes (Chron. i. 125, 128, p.
emperor's statues (vol. i. 185 b, n.). The 69, ed. Bonn, 1839) relate how the emperor
Alexandrian synod of 324 disallowed his Arcadius on his death-bed directed his son
orders and pronounced him a layman (74, 75), Theodosius to be put under Isdigerdes's tute-
disproving his pretensions to have been or- lage. (Petavius, Rat. Temp. pt. i. 1. vi. c. 15,
dained by bp. Meletius, in whose breviarium p. 249, Lugd. 1710 ;Greg. Abul-Pharajius,
his name did not appear (11, 28, 46, 71). He Hist. Comp. Dyn. i. p. 91, Oxf. 1663.) For
had given out that he was a presbyter of the a time he was almost a Christian, and as
ISDIGERDES II. ISIDORUS 541

Socrates (H. E.
vii. 8) says, gave every neither now, nor hereafter, nor for ever,nor
facility for the propagation of the gospel, yet for ever and ever " (Hist, of Vartan, tr. by
probatly closed his days in persecuting the Neumann, 1830). Isdigerd's attempt to con-
church. Under the example and influence of vert Armenia to Zoroastrianism was mani-
Maruthas, bp. of Mart\Topolis in Mesopo- festly dictated by a desire to detach the
tamia, who had been sent on an embassy from country from the Christian Roman empire.
the Romans early in his reign, he was very In 451 he attacked the Armenians. They
favourably disposed towards Christianity and endeavoured to secure the help of the emperor
the church in Persia had peace with full Marcian, who was, however, paralysed through
liberty of worship and church-building. He fear of Attila and the Huns. In 455 or 456
overcame and exposed the impostures of the the Persians triumphed in a great battle,
magi, with the assistance of Maruthas and wherein the patriarch Joseph and many
other Christians, and miracles are said to nobles were taken prisoners and martyred.
have been wrought before him for the con- Agathias, iv. 27 Tabari, Chronique, iii. 127
; ;

firmation of the gospel. A second visit of Clinton, Fasti Romani, i. p. 546 Tillem. Emp.
;

Maruthas seems to have deepened the im- vi. 39 Saint-Martin, Mem. sur I'Armen. vol.
;

pression (Socr. ib.), but the indiscreet and i. p. 322 ; Pathkanian, Histoire des Sassan. in
impetuous zeal of one of Maruthas's com- Journal Asiatique (1866), pp. 108-238 Mordt- ;

panions, Abdas bp. of Susa, lost this royal mann, Zeitschrift der deutschen Morgenlan-
convert to the faith. Abdas burned one of dischen Gesellschaft, t. viii. 70 ; Rawlinson's
the temples of fire (Theod. H. E. v. 39). This Seventh Or. Monarchy (1876), c. xv. p. 301,
offence Isdigerd was prepared to overlook, if where other authorities will be found. Path-
Abdas would rebuild the burned pyreion kanian's article gives a list of writers who
;

failing this, the king threatened to burn down have treated of this period. Isdigerd II. was
and destroy all Christian churches in Persia. succeeded by Perozes. [g.t.s.]
Abdas, esteeming it morally wrong to rebuild Isidorus (13), archbp. of Seville, 600-636.
the temple, refused tocomply, and the churches Notwithstanding his prominent place in
were burned. Abdas was among the first Spanish ecclesiastical history, the known facts
of the martyrs, and a persecution commenced of his life are few, and considerable uncertainty
in or towards the end of Isdigerd's reign, attaches to many points. It appears certain
which his son and successor Vararanes or that his father was of the province of Carta-
Bararanes carried on with most revolting gena, and that for some reason his parents left
cruelty and which was only ended by the there for Seville either before or very shortly
presence of the Roman legions. From the after his birth. It is not certain, therefore,
odium of this persecution the memory of whether Isidore was born at Seville or Carta-
Isdigerd is specially shielded by Socrates {H. gena, but probably at the latter. Arevalo
E. vii. 18-21), who throws it on his son but (i. 122) decides for Seville
; ; so Dupin :

Theodoret (v. 39) probably gives the truer Florez {Esp. Sag. ix. 193, x. 120) is in favour
account, though Isdigerd had probably of Cartagena. All things tend to shew that
neither the time nor inclination to carry out his parents died when he was very young.
his edicts with severity. His character is He was the youngest of the family. Leander,
described as noble and generous, tarnished the eldest, was archbp. of Seville c. 579-599i
only by this one dark spot in the last year of and Fulgentius was bp. of Astigi or Ecija in
his reign or in a brief period in the middle of the province of Seville. Isidore was archbp.
it. For the best modern literature of this of Seville for nearl}' 40 years, and died in 636.
reign, see Isdigerdes (2). [g.t.s.] Leander received the pall from Gregory the
Isdigerdes (2) II., king of Persia, the son Great in 599. Gams fixes 600 as the year of
and successor of Vararanes V. All modern Leander's death, and consequently of Isidore's
writers place his death a.d. 457, but differ succession (ii. 41). To date the birth of Isi-
somewhat as to the length of his reign. For dore c. 560 will not be far wrong. His early
its commencement Rawlinson thinks the best manhood was probably passed in a monastery,
evidence is for 440. Soon after he declared where he could pursue the studies which
war against the Roman empire. Theodosius afterwards made him famous. Most probably
II. shortly made peace with him, and Isdigerd he never belonged to a coenobite order.
then undertook a war, which continued many We meet his name in connexion with the
years (443-451), against the Tatars of Trans- so-called decree of Gunthimar, the Gothic
oxiana. He attempted to force the Zoroas- king, and a supposed synod of Toledo in 610
trian rehgion on Christian Armenia. In this assigning metropolitan rank to the see of
he was ably seconded by his vizier Mihr-nerses, Toledo. In the list of subscriptions appended
whose proclamation, still extant, embodies to the Decretum in the conciliar collections
the Zoroastrian objection to Christian doc- [e.g. Mansi, x. 511) Isidore stands second,
trine [Mesrobes]. It was answered in following the king. He next appears as
a council of eighteen Armenian bishops, presiding over the second council of Seville in
headed by the patriarch Joseph, at Ardashad Nov. 618 or 619, in the reign of king Sisebut
in 450. This document, also extant, is a (Mansi, x. 555). The church of Seville is
lengthened apology for Christianity and con- spoken of as the "holy Jerusalem." The
tains a detailed confession of faith, with a governor of the city, Sisisclus, and the trea-
resolution of adhering to it couched in these surer Suanilanus were present. The decrees
terms :
" Do thou therefore inquire of us no set forth fully the doctrine of the Person of
further concerning these things, for our belief Christ against the Acephali, supporting it with
originates not with man. We are not taught appeals to Scripture, the Apostles' Creed, and
like children but we are indissolubly bound the Fathers. This document was signed by
;

to God, from Whom nothing can detach us, 8 bishops, of whom Isidore subscribed first as
642 iSIDORUS iSlDORUS
metropolitan of Baetica. Some uncertainty with the antiphon " O doctor optime," and
hangs over Isidore's presence at a council the gospel, " Vos estis sal terrae."
held at Toledo c. 625. His works are many and multifarious, (i)
The fourth council of Toledo was held in His Etymologies or Origins was, according to
633, in the extreme old age of Isidore and Braulio and Ildefonsus, his last work. It is
shortly before his death, soon after Sisenand in 20 books, and treats of the whole circle of
came to the throne. It met in the basilica the sciences in a very concise, methodical, and
of St. Leocadia, and was composed of pre- convenient manner. It is for the period a
lates from Gaul and Narbonne, and from all really wonderful work, and the authors quoted
the provinces of Spain. The king, with his in it shew his wide classical reading. The
court magnates, was present, and threw him- subjects of the books are : i. Grammar in 44

self on the earth before the bishops, and with chapters, containing an immense amount of
tears and sighs entreated their intercession information in a convenient form. ii. Rhet-
with God, and exhorted them to observe the oric and dialectics, in 31 chapters, iii. The

ancient decrees of the church and to reform four mathematical sciences :i.e. arithmetic,
abuses. The council issued 75 decrees, for a 9 chapters ;
geometry, 5 chapters ; music, 9
summary of which see D. C. A. ii. 1968. chapters ; and astronomy, 48 chapters ;

They were signed by the six metropolitan algebra not being yet invented, iv. Medicine,
archbishops of Spain. This council was the in 13 chapters, v. Laws, 27 chapters ;Times,
only one in which they were all present, and 12 chapters, vi. Ecclesiastical books and
was the most numerously attended of all offices, 19 chapters, vii. Of God, angels, and
Spanish synods. Isidore signed first as the the orders of the faithful, 14 chapters, viii.
"
oldest metropolitan and oldest bishop present The church and divers sects, 11 chapters.
(Mansi, x. 641). The council probably ex- ix. Languages, nations, kingdoms, warfare,
pressed with tolerable accuracy the mind and citizens, and relationships, 7 chapters, x.
influence of Isidore. It presents a vivid pic- An alphabetical index and explanation of
ture of the church of Spain at that period. certain words. A vast amount of erroneous
The position and deference granted to the ingenuity is displayed in deriving all the
king is remarkable, and nothing is said of words of the Latin language from itself e.g. :

allegiance to Rome. The church is free and " Nox, a nocendo dicta, eo quod oculis noceat.
independent, yet bound in solemn allegiance Niger, quasi nubiger, quia non serenus, sed
to the acknowledged king. The relations of fusco opertus est. Unde et nubilum diem
the church to the Jews are striking, and the tetrum dicimus. Priidens, quasi porro videns:
canons shew that there were many Jews in perspicax enim est, et incertorum praevidet
the Spanish community and that the Christian casus. Cauterium dictum quasi cauturium
church had not yet emancipated itself from quod tirat," etc. xi. Of men and portents, in
the intolerance of Judaism. This council 4 chapters, xii. Animals, in 8. xiii. The
was the last great public event of Isidore's universe (mundus), in 22. xiv. The earth and
life. He died three years afterwards. As he its parts, in 9. xv. Buildings, land-surveying,
felt his end approaching he distributed his roads, etc., in 16. xvi. Mineralogy, stones,
goods lavishly among the poor, and is said to weights, measures, and metals, in 27. xvii.
have spent the whole day for six months in Agriculture, in 11. xviii. War and various
almsgiving. In his last illness he performed games, in 69. xix. Ships, architecture,
public penance in the church of St. Vincentius clothes of various kinds, in 34. xx. Food,
the martyr, gathered around him the bishops, domestic and agricultural implements, car-
the religious orders, the clergy, and the poor, riages, harness, etc., in 16. The treatise,
then, as one bishop invested him with the peni- which in the Roman edition occupies two
tential girdle, and another strewed ashes on his quarto vols., is a singular medley of informa-
head, he made a pious and eloquent prayer, tion and ignorance, and presents a remarkable
translated in full by Gams, received the Body picture of the condition of life and knowledge
and Blood of Christ in the sacrament, took at the time. In bk. v., under the head of
affectionate leave of all present, retired to his " De discretione temporum," is a chrono-
cell, and in four days died. logical summary of sacred and secular history
Isidore was undoubtedly the greatest man from Adam to Heraclius, concluding in these
of his time in the church of Spain. He was striking words :
" Eraclius xvii nunc agit
versed in all the learning of the age, and well imperii annum : Judaei in Hispania Chris-
acquainted with (Jreek, Latin, and Hebrew. tian! efficiuntur. Residuum sextae aetatis
His works shew him as a man of varied soli Deo est cognitum." The whole period
accomplishments and great versatility of (after an idea common in Augustine) is divided
mind and the prominent place he long filled
; into six ages, ending with Noah, Abraham,
in his own country sufficiently indicates his Samuel, Zedekiah, Juhus Caesar, Heraclius.
general ability and character. His eloquence In bk. vi. is an introductory account of the
struck all who heard him with astonishment, several books of the Bible. It is probably not
and he represented in himself all the science possible to overrate the value and the useful-
of his time. His language is studiously ness of this treatise to the age in which Isidore
scriptural. He is quoted as holding pre- lived, and indeed for many ages it was the
destinarian views, but his language seems best available handbook.
hardly to go so far. At the 8th council of {2) Libri Dtfferentiarum sive de Proprietate
Toledo, in 653, the epithet Egregius was —
Sermonum. Bk. i. treats of the differences of
applied to him, and confirmed at the 15th words, often with acuteness and accuracy.
council of Toledo, 688. Popes and councils Bk. ii. treats in 40 sections and 170 paragraphs
vied in doing him honour, till Benedict XIV. of the differences of things, e.g. between Deus
permitted the oflace of St. Isidore to be recited and Dominus, Substance and Essence, etc.
A

ISIDORUS ISIDORUS 543

This in fact, a brief theological treatise on


is, alsoupon the world, the origin of evil, angels
the doctrine of the Trinity, the power and man, the soul, and senses of the flesh, Christ
nature of Christ, Paradise, angels, and men. and the Holy Spirit, the church and heresies,
He elaborately defines words denoting the the heathen nations, the law, seven rules or
members of the body, sin, grace, freewill, the principles for the understanding of Scripture,
law and the gospel, the active and con- the difference between the two Testaments,
templative life, virtues, vices, and the like. symbol and prayer, baptism and communion,
(3) Allegoriae quaedam Sacrae
Scripturae. —
martyrdom, the miracles wrought by the
A spiritual interpretation of the names of and his works, the resurrec-
saints. Antichrist
Scripture characters 129 from O. T. and 121 tion and judgment, hell, the punishment of
:

from N. T. the latter being often from our the wicked, and the glory of the just. Great
;

Lord's parables, miracles, etc., as the ten use is made throughout of the works of
virgins, the woman with the lost piece of Augustine and Gregory.
money, the man who planted a vineyard, and (11) De Ecclesiasticis Officiis treats of the
the like. The angered king who sent his services of the church, and of clerics, their
armies and destroyed those murderers and rules and orders, the tonsure, the episcopal
burnt up their city is interpreted of God the of&ce, vicars episcopal, presbyters, deacons,
Father, who sent Vespasian Caesar to destroy sacristans and subdeacons, readers, psalmists,
Jerusalem. He shews an intimate acquaint- exorcists, acolytes, porters, monks, penitents,
ance with Scripture and with the wonderful virgins, widows, the married, catechumens,
way it had then permeated the teaching and exorcism, salt, candidates for baptism, the
lifeof the church. The treatise is of intrinsic the rule of faith, baptism, chrism,
creed,
interest. imposition of hands, and confirmation.
(4) Somewhat similar to the last is de Ortu (12) Synonyma de lamentatione animae pecca-
et Obitu Patrum qui in Scriptura Laudibus tricis. —
One of the most curious of Isidore's
Efferuntur 64 chapters on O.T. characters works a kind of soliloquy between Homo and
; ;

and 21 on New, from Adam to Maccabaeus Ratio. Homo begins by lamenting his lost
and from Zacharias to Titus. The genuine- and desperate condition in consequence of sin,
ness of this treatise has been much doubted. and Ratio undertakes to direct him aright to
(5) Proomeia in Libros Vet. et Nov. Test.

a higher and holier condition issuing in the
Very brief introductions to the several books bliss of eternal felicity.
of O. and N.T., including Tobias, Judith, (13) Regula Monachorum. —
This treatise led
Esdras, and Maccabees, " ex quibus quidem some to suppose Isidore a Benedictine monk,
Tobiae, Judith, et Maccabaeorum, Hebraei the only order then established in the West ;

non recipiunt. Ecclesia tamen eosdem intra but Gams thinks the proof not sufficient.
canonicas scripturas enumerat." (14) Thirteen short letters follow to bp.:

(6) Liber Numerorumqui in Sanctis Scripturis Leudefred of Cordova to Braulio, to whom



;

occurrunt. A mystical treatment of numbers he speaks of giving a ring and a pall to ;

from one to sixty, omitting some after twenty. Helladius of Toledo on the fall of a certain bp.
(7) Quaestiones tarn de Novo quam de Veteri of Cordova to duke Claudius, whom he con-
Testamento. — ;

A series of 41 questions on the gratulates on his victories to Massona, bp. of


;

substanceand teachingof Scripture withappro- Merida and to archdeacon Redemptus.



;

priate answers. Some are very interesting. (15) De Ordine Creaturarum. This book has
(8) Secretoruni Expositiones Sacramentorum, been doubted by some, and, though Arevalo
seu Quaestiones in Vetus Testamentum. —
maintains it to be genuine, he prints it in
mystical interpretation of the principal events smaller type. Gams reckons it as Isidore's.
recorded in the books of Moses, Joshua, It treats of faith in the Trinity, spiritual
Judges, Samuel, Kings, Ezra, Maccabees. creation, the waters above the firmament, the
The preface states that he has gathered the firmament of heaven, the sun and moon, the
opinions of ancient ecclesiastical writers, viz. devil and the nature of demons, the nature
Origen, Victorinus, Ambrose, Jerome, Augus- of waters and course of the ocean. Paradise,
tine, Fulgentius, Cassianus, and pope Gregory the nature of man after sin, the diversity of
the Great. Gen. is treated of in 31 chapters sinners and their place of punishment, pur-
Ex. in 59, Lev. in 17, Num. in 42, Deut. in gatorial fire and the future life.
22, Josh, in 18, Judg. in 9 (including i on (16) De Natitra Rerum Liber. —
One of the
Ruth), I. Kings (i.e. Sam.) in 21, II. Kings most celebrated of Isidore's treatises, dedi-
in 6, III. Kings in 8, IV. Kings in 8, Ezra in cated to king Sisebut (ace. a.d. 612), one of the
3, Mac. in i. The mystical method of inter- best kings of Spain, whose death was univer-
pretation is pursued to an excessive degree. sally lamented by the Goths. Isidore dis-
(9) De Fide Catholica ex Veteri et Novo courses of the days, the night, the seasons, the

Testamento contra Judaeos. Addressed to his solstice and equinox, the world and its five
sister Florentina and apparently written at zones, heaven and its name, the planets, the
her request. It treats of the person of Christ waters, the heavens, the nature, size, and
from His existence in the bosom of the Father course of the sun, the light and course of the
before the world was till His ascension and moon, the eclipse of sun and moon, the course
return to judgment ; and the consequences of of the stars, the position of the seven planets,
the Incarnation, viz. the unbelief of the Jews, the light of the stars, falling stars, the names
the ingathering of the Gentiles, the conversion of the stars and whether they have any soul,
of the Jews at the end of the world, and the thunder, lightning, the rainbow, clouds,
cessation of the Sabbath. showers, snow, hail, the nature and names of
(10) —
Sententiarum Libri iii. A kind of the winds, the signs of storms, pestilence, the
manual of Christian faith and practice, treat- heat, size, and saltness of the ocean, the river
ing of God and His attributes. It discourses Nile, the names of sea and rivers, the position

g44 ISlDOliUS ISIDORUS


and motion of the earth, mount Etna, and the historiques du Moyen-dge, p. 1127, including
parts of the earth. He gives diagrams to those of Henschen in Boll. Acta SS. 4 Apr.
illustrate his meaning. For a full analysis of i. 327 Arevalo in his ed. of Isidore's Works
;
;

the sources of this book see Gustavus Bekker's Florez, Esp. Sag. ix. 173 (ed. 1752) Dupin, ;

ed. (Berlin, 1857). Eccl. Writ. t. ii. p. i (ed. 1724) Ceillier, xi.
(17) Chronicon. — A very brief summary of 710 ; Cave, i. 547 Gams, Kirchengeschichte
;
;

the principal events from the creation of the von Spanien (3 vols. 8vo, Regensburg, 1862-
world to the reign of the emperor Heraclius 1874 the great want of this excellent work
;

and of king Sisebut. Hertzberg gives an is an adequate index the first vol. alone has
;

elaborate analysis of the sources of Isidore's a "Register"). Arevalo's ed. of Isidore's


two chronicles in the Forschungen zur deut- works has been reprinted by the Abbe Migne
schen Gesch. xv. 289. in his Patr. Lat. Ixxxi.-lxxxiv., with the addi-
(18) Historia de regibus Gothorutn, Wandal- tion of an eighth vol., containing the Collectio

orum et Suevorum. The Goths, according to Canonum ascribed to Isidore ; vols. Ixxxv.-
Isidore, were descended from Gog and Magog, Ixxxvi. of Migne contain Liturgia Mozarabica
and of the same race as the Getae. They first secundum Regulam Beati Isidori. There is an
appeared in Thessaly in the time of Pompey, excellent ed. of the de Natura Rerum Liber by
and in that of Valerian devastated Macedonia, G. Becker (Berhn 1857). Prof. J. E. B. Mayor
Greece, Pontus, Asia, and lUyricum. The has given a list of editions and authorities
history is brought down to 621, the reign of in his Bibliographical Clue to Latin. Literature,
king Swintila. Isidore praises the Goths p. 212. [s.L.]
highly and Spaniards of his time esteemed De Reg. Gothorutn, Vandalorum, et Suev^'

;

it an honour to be reckoned Goths. This orum. The histories, of all Isidore's works,
brief sketch is invaluable as our chief author- have the most practical value for the present
ity for the history of the West Goths. Of the day. The Historia Gothorum is still to us, as
Vandals we learn less from him, and his it was to Mariana, one of the main sources of
sketch of the Suevi is very brief, the former Gothic history. Upon the histories in general
compressing 123 years into a single page, and was based all the later medieval history-
the latter 177 in the same space. The Vandals writing of Spain. A most valuable contribu-
entered Spain under Gunderic and were tion was made to our knowledge of the exact
destroyed on the fall of Gelimer ; the Suevi place of the histories in historical work by
entered under Hermeric in 409 and became Dr. Hugo Hertzberg (Gottingen, 1874) in his
incorporated with the Gothic nation in 585. Die Historien und die Chroniken des Isidorus

(19) De Viris Illustribus liber. Many Greeks von Sevilla : Eine Quellenuntersuchung, Erster
and Latins had treated of the Christian writers Th., die Historien. Dr. Hertzberg's great
before Isidore, but he determined to give a merit lies in the clearness with which he shews
brief outline of those whom he had read him- exactly how Isidore worked, what were the
self. The list embraces 46 names, and Braulio kind and amount of his material, and the
has added that of Isidore himself in the cele- method employed in working it up.
brated " Praenotatio librorum S. Isidori a Dr. Hertzberg's general conclusions are,
Braulione edita." Among the 46 are Xystus that Isidore neither possessed large material
the pope, Macrobius the deacon, Theodore of nor used what he had well. In no case did
Mopsuestia, Hosius of Cordova, Eusebius of he take all that earlier chronicles offered him,
Dorylaeum, Chrysostom, Hilary of Aries, but only extracts his choice and arrangement
;

Gregory the pope, Leander his own brother, of statements are often bad, and the proper
and Maximus of Saragossa. This is a valuable chronological order frequently disregarded.
summary of important facts in ecclesiastical Notwithstanding these drawbacks, the perma-
history, but too often disfigured by the fierce nent historical value of certain portions of the
and illiberal polemical spirit of the day vide, Hist. Goth, is very great. From the reign of
e.g., his remarks on the death of Hosius. Euric, where Idatius breaks off, Isidore becomes
Other minor works assigned, some doubt- for a time our only informant. He alone pre-
fully, to Isidore need not be enumerated. serves the memory of Euric's legislation, while
His Latin is not pure. He uses many our knowledge of Visigothic history under
Spanish words, and Arevalo has collected no Gesalic, Theudis, Theudigisel, Agila, and
fewer than 1,640 words which would not be Athanagild rests essentially on his testimony.
understood by the ordinary reader or would In the prominent reigns of Leovigild and
strike him as strange. The style is feeble and Recared, J oh. Biclarensis becomes our great
inflated, having all the marks of an age of source, but Isidore's additions are important.
decadence. He was a voluminous writer of From Recared to Suinthila he is again our
great learning, well versed in Holy Scripture, best and sometimes our only source. The
of which he manifests a remarkable know- Hist. Vand. is, however, historically valueless,
ledge, had a trained and cultivated mind, but as we possess the sources from which it is a
was rather a receptive and reproductive writer mere extract, and the same may almost be
than one of strong masculine and original said of the Hist. Suev. Just where Isidore
mind. He was a very conspicuous ornament might have drawn most from oral testimony
of the Spanish church and shed great glory on and thus supplied a real gap in our historical
the age he adorned. He did much to hand on knowledge, viz. in the 100 years of Suevian
the light of Christianity and make it effectual history between Remismund and Theodemir,
to the amelioration of a semi-barbarous nation, he fails us most notably. The whole missing
and his character contrasts favourably with cent, is dismissed in one vague sentence which
those of a later period. tells us nothing.
A full list of the Lives of Isidore up to his For a complete catalogue of the nine
time may be seen in Chevalier's Sources MSS. of the longer form of the text, and the
ISIDORUS ISIDORUS PELUSIOTA 54^
two MSS. of the shorter, as well as of the Once they distributed their goods to the
editions of both texts, see Dr. Hertzberg's needy now they appropriate what belongs to
;

Diss. 8-18. He gives a complete analysis of the poor. Once they practised virtue now ;

both texts according to the sources. For they ostracize [a favourite phrase with Isidore]
general references see Potthast, Bibl. Hist. those who do. ... I will not accuse all " (iii.
Med. Devi. The longer text of the histories is 223). " Once men avoided the episcopate
printed in Esp. Sagr. vi. with an introduction because of the greatness of its authority now ;

and long notes by Florez. [m.a.w.] they rush into it because of the greatness of
Isidorus (24).
'
[Basilides.] its luxury. The dignity has lapsed from a
. . .

Isidorus (31) PelUSiota, an eminent ascetic, priesthood into a tyranny, from a stewardship
theologian, and spiritual director in 5th cent., into a mastership [5e(n:oTdav'\. For they
born at Alexandria (Photius, Bibl. 228). His claim not to administer as stewards, but to
family was probably of high rank. The wide appropriate as masters " (v. 21, to a bishop).
range of his reading, as shewn by his famili- " It is not long since the church had splendid
arity with Greek poets, historians, orators, and teachers and approved disciples " and it ;

philosophers, witnesses to the best Alexandrian might be so again if bishops would " lay aside
education. He also felt the full influence of their tyranny and shew a fatherly interest in
that great development of Egyptian monas- their people but until that foundation is
. . .

ticism which was encouraged by the seclusion well laid, I think it idle to talk about the top-
of Athanasius during his third exile and by stone " (v. 126). He would say to worldly
the persecution of the " holy solitaries " after and arrogant prelates, " Abate your pride,
his death, and which made so deep an impres- relax your superciliousness, remember that
sion on the as yet unconverted Augustine you are but ashes. Do not use the arms of"
. . .

{Confess, viii. 6 ;cf. Isid. Ep. i. 173, alluding the priesthood against the priesthood itself
to "the blessed Ammon"). Isidore re- (v. 131). " When those who were crowned
solved to adopt the monastic life in its with the priesthood led an evangelical and
coenobitic form, as it had been organized by apostolical life, the priesthood was naturally
Pachomius at Tabenna and was being ex- dreaded by the sovereignty but now it is ;

hibited by various communities in the Upper the sovereignty which is dreaded by the priest-
Thebaid which followed his rule, by others in hood, or rather by those who seem to dis-
the Lower Thebaid, and the 5,000 inmates of charge it but by their conduct insult it " (v.
the cells of Nitria (cf. Fleury, bk. xx. c. 9). 268, to Cyril). " Some openly reproach . . .

The place he selected was near Pelusium, an priests others pay them outward respect but
;

ancient border-town at one of the Nile mouths. in secret revile them. This does not sur- . . .

Jerome says it had "a very safe harbour " and prise me. As they do not act like those of old,
was a centre of all " business connected with they are treated differently. Those of old
the sea " (Comm. in Ezech. ix. 30), but its in- corrected kings when they sinned these do ;

habitants were proverbial for dulness (Hieron. not correct even rich subjects and if they ;

Ep. Ixxxiv. 9). It was the capital of the pro- try to correct some poor man, they are re-
vince of Augustamnica Prima, and as such the proached as having been convicted of the
seat of a " corrector " or governor. When Isi- same offences " (v. 278). So, speaking to an
dore first knew it, it was " rich and populous " ambitious deacon about I. Tim. iii. i, he cor-
(Ep. iii. 260). It suffered much from the rects a misapprehension. " Paul did not say,
maladministration of a Cappadocian named '
Let every one desire the episcopate.' ... It
Gigantius. Believing that monastic life was is a work, not a relaxation a solicitude, not ;

the " imitation and receptacle of all the Lord's a luxury a responsible ministration, not an
;

precepts " [Ep. i. 278), Isidore became a irresponsible dominion a fatherly supervision, ;

thorough monk in his ascetic self-devotion. not a t^Tannical autocracy" (iii. 216). Else-
Whether he became abbat Tillemont con- where he complains that bishops would receive
siders uncertain (xv. loi). We know from persons excommunicated by other bishops,
Facundus (Def. Tri. Capit. ii. 4), and, in- to the ruin of the discipline of souls (iii. 239),
deed, virtually from himself [Ep. i. 258), that and that in their bitter contests these official
he was ordained a presbyter, very likely by peacemakers would fain devour each other
bp. Ammonius (Ep. ii. 127), clearly not by (iv. 133). The secularization of the episcopal
his successor Eusebius, whom
Isidore depictscharacter he traces in one letter to the exces-
as the centre of an ecclesiastical scandal which honour paid by emperors to bishops, and
sive
was to him a standing grief and offence. adds " There are bishops who take pains to
:

Perhaps this ecclesiastical degeneracy near live up to the apostolic standard if you say, ;

his own home led Isidore to generalize some- Very few,' I do not deny it but
'
many ; . . .

what too despondingly as to its prevalence are called, few are chosen." Isidore exhibits
all around. Alluding to Eusebius's love of an intense habitual moral earnestness, vigilant
church-building he says "It was not for the against all that implied or might tend to sin
:

sake of walls, but of souls, that the King of (v. 17, 208). His downright censures, de-
Heaven came to visit us." " Could I have livered under a serious conviction that he was
chosen, I would have rather lived in apostolic specially appointed for the purpose (i. 389 ;

times, when church buildings were not thus cf. Tillem. xv. 102), naturally made him
adorned but the church was decked with enemies among the higher clergy, who tried
grace, than in these days, when the buildings to put him under some sort of ban, and there-
are ornamented with ail kinds of marble, and by " unintentionally set a crown upon his
the church is bare and void of spiritual gifts " head" (Ep. v. 131). But he was not less
(Ep. ii. 246 ; cf. ii. 88). " Once pastors stern to faults in other orders, such as the in-
would die fur their flocks now they destroy hospitality (i. 50), gluttony (i. 392), or " pug-
;

the sheep by causing the soul to stumble. nacity " (i. 298) of monks; their neglect of
. . .

35
.:

546 ISIDORUS PELUSIOTA ISIDORUS PELUSIOTA


manual labour 49), the disorderliness of
(i. of Theophilus,' " etc. (Ep. i. 310
nephew cf. ;

those who haunted cities and frequented a Latin version, not quite accurate, by Facun-
" "
public shows, as if all that the angelic life
"
dus. I.e.). He had, however, no sympathy
required were " a cloak, a staff, and a beard with Nestorius in the close of the letter he
:

(i. 92 ; cf. i. 220, and Chalcedon, can. 4). He seems to contrast him with Chrysostom ; in
rebukes a physician who is morally diseased the next letter he urges Theodusius II. to
(Ep. i. 391), denounces a homicide who went restrain his ministers from " dogmatizing " to
"swaggering" through Pelusium (i. 297), the council, the court being then favourable
warns a wicked magistrate to flee from eternal to Nestorius. Isidore was, indeed, very
punishment (i. 31), remonstrates with a zealous against all tendencies to Apollinarian-
soldier for invading the cells of monks and ism he disliked the phrase, " God's Passion,"
:

teaching them false doctrine (i. 327), and with he insisted that the word " Incarnate " should
a general for attempting to take away the be added— it was the Passion of Christ (Ep.
privilege of sanctuary (i. 174), etc. In a letter i. 129) he urged on Cyril the authority of
;

probably addressed to Pulcheria he repro- Athanasiusfor the phrase, " from two natures"
bates the conduct of some imperial envoys, (i. 323), and he even usestheyet clearer phrase,
who had compromised their Christianity in ultimately adopted by the council of Chal-
the negotiation of a peace (iv. 143). cedon, "in both natures" (i. 405) but he ;

The two great church questions in which repeatedly insists on the unity of the Person
Isidore took a decided part brought him into of Christ, the God-Man, which was the point
collision with his own patriarch, Cyril of at issue in the controversy (i. 23, 303, 405).
Alexandria. The first related to the recog- He says that " the Lamb of God," as the true
nition of St. Chrysostom's memory as worthy Paschal victim, "combined the tire of the
of the reverence of faithful Christians. Theo- divine essence with the flesh that is now eaten
philus of Alexandria had practically procured by us " (i. 219) in a letter to a Nestorianizing
;

his deposition and exile the West had sup- " scholasticus " he calls the Virgin (not simply
;

ported Chrysostom while he lived and after- Theotokos, but) " Mother of God Incarnate "
wards had suspended communion with (Oeov crapKwdivTo% /j.i]Tipa," i. 54). When
churches which would not insert his name in Cyril, two years later, came to an under-
their diptychs. Antioch had i^elded even standing with John of Antioch, Isidore ex-
;

Atticus of Constantinople had done so for horted him to be consistent and said that his
peace' sake. Cyril, the nephew and successor most recent writings shewed him to be " either
of Theophilus, held fast to his uncle's position. open to flattery or an agent of levity, swayed
Isidore had loved and honoured " holy John," by vainglory instead of imitating the great
if he had not, as Nicephorus says (xiv. 30), athletes " of the faith, etc. (i. 324). Perhaps
been instructed by him. In a letter to a these letters were "the treatise to" (or
grammarian he quotes Libanius's panegyric against) Cyril, which Evagrius ascribes to
on his oratory (Ep. ii. 42) to another Isidore Isidore. Isidore was better employed when
;

he specially recommends " the most wise he uttered warnings against the rising heresy
John's " commentary on the Romans (v. 32) of Eutychianism ;
" To assert only one nature :

in another letter, recommending his treatise of Christ after the Incarnation is to take away
" on the Priesthood," he calls him " the eye both, either by a change of the divine or an
of the Byzantine church, and of every church " abatement of the human " (i. 102) among ;

(i. 156) and he describes the " tragedy of various errors he mentions " a fusion and co-
;

John" in the bitter words: "Theophilus, mixture and abolition of the natures," urging
who was building-mad, and worshipped gold, his correspondent, a presbyter, to cling to the
and had a spite against my
namesake " (see " inspired " Nicene faith (iv. 99).
Socr. vi. 9), was " put forward by Egypt to His theology was generally characterized by
persecute that pious man and true theologian " accuracy and moderation. In a truly Athana-
(Ep. i. 152). Similarly he wrote to Cyril sian spirit (cf. Athan. de Deer. Nic. 22) he
" Put a stop to these contentions do not writes,
:
" We
are bound to know and believe
involve the living Church in a private ven- that God is, not to busy ourselves as to what
geance prosecuted out of duty to the dead, He is " (i.e. attempt to comprehend His
nor entail on her a perpetual division [alwviov essence Ep. ii. 299). He is emphatic against
;

dix^uoiav] under pretence of piety" (i. 570, the two extremes of Arianism and Sabellian-
transl. by Facund.). Cyril took this advice, ism. " If God was always like to Himself,
and the " Joannite " quarrel came to an end, He must have been always Father there- ;

probably in 417-418 (Tillem. xiv. 281 ; see fore the Son is co-eternal " (i. 241, cf. i. 389) ;

Photius, Bibl. 232). and Eunomians exceed Arians in making the


The other matter was far more momentous. Son a servant (i. 246). Sabellians misinter-
When Cyril was at the council of Ephesus pret John X. 30, where ^v shews the one
endeavouring to crush Nestorianism, Isidore essence, and the plural ia-jnei' the two hypo-
wrote to him " Prejudice does not see stases (i. 138).
: In the Trinity, the Godhead
clearly ; antipathy does not see at all. If is one, but the hypostases are three (i. 247).
you wish to be clear of both these affections In Heb. i. 3 the dTravyaafxa indicates the co-
of the eyesight, do not pass violent sentences, eternity, the X''/"i''''"'7P the personality it is ;

but commit causes to just judgment. God in things made that " before " and " after
. .
"
was pleased to come down and see the cry have place, not in " the dread and sovereign
'
'

of Sodom, thereby teaching us to inquire Trinity " (iii. 18 cf. the Quieunque, ver. 25).
;

accurately. For many of those at Ephesus The belief in three Persons in one essence ex-
accuse you of pursuing a personal feud, in- cludes alike Judaism and polytheism (Ep. iii.
stead of seeking the things of Jesus Christ in 112). Of John xiv. 28 he observes that
an orthodox way. He is,' they say, the "greater" or "less than" implies identity
' '
; ;

ISIDORUS PELUSIOTA ISIDORUS PELUSIOTA 547


of nature (i. 422). On Phil. ii. 6 seq. he argues and he takes occasion from a question as to
that, unless Christ was equal to the Father, Origen's theory about the lapse of souls to
the illustration is irrelevant if He was equal,
; cite a variety of opinions still current, appar-
then it is pertinent, (iv. 22. The passage is ently among those who still rejected the
interesting as shewing that he, like St. Gospel. " Some think that the soul is ex-
Chrysostom, while interpreting ovx ap-rray/jLov tinguished with the body some have . . .

— 0t(i} of the condescension, understood St. imagined that all is governed by chance
Paul to mean, " Christ could afford to waive some have entrusted their lives to fate,
the display of His co-equality, just because necessity, and fortune some have said that
. . .

He did not regard it as a thing to which He heaven is ruled by providence, but the earth
had no right.") He explains Rom. iii. 25 is not " (iv.
: 163). He speaks of the harm done
when no other cure for a man's ills was to the Christians' argument by Christians' mis-
possible, " God brought in the Only-begotten conduct "If we overcome heretics, pagans,
:

Son as a ransom one Victim, surpassing all and Jews by our correct doctrine, we are
;

in worth, was offered up for all" (iv. 100). bound also to overcome them by our conduct,
He contends that the divinity of the Holy lest, when worsted on the former ground,
Spirit — —
denied by Macedonians is involved they should think to overcome on the latter,
in the divinity of the Son (i. 20). Against the and, after rejecting our faith, should adduce
denial of the latter doctrine he cites a number against it our own lives" (iv. 226).
" Very many of his letters are answers to
of texts and explains the " humble language
" questions as to texts of Scripture.
used by Jesus as the result of the " economy Like
of the Incarnation, whereas the " lofty langu- Athanasius, he sometimes gives a choice of
age " also used by Him would be inexplicable explanations {e.g. i. 114) although a follower
;

if He were a mere man (iv. 166). " Baptism," of Chrysostom, he shews an Alexandrian
he writes to a count, " does not only wash tendency to far-fetched and fantastic inter-
away the uncleanness derived through Adam's pretation, as when he explains the live coal
transgression, for that much were nothing, and the tongs in Isa. vi. 7 to represent the
but conveys a divine regeneration surpassing divine essence and the fiesh of Christ (i. 42),
all words —
redemption, sanctification, adop- or the carcase and the eagles to mean human-
tion, etc. and the baptized person, through ity ruined by tasting the forbidden fruit and
;

the reception of the sacred mysteries [bf the lifted up by ascetic mortification (i. 282), or
Eucharist cf. i. 228], becomes of one body
:
when " he that is on the house-top " is made
with the Only-begotten, and is united to Him to denote a man who despises the present life
as the body to its head" (iii. 195). He cen- (i. 210). He reproves a presbyter for criticiz-
sures such abstinence as proceeds from ing m^'stical interpreters (ii. 81), but says also
" Manichean or Marcionite principles " (i. that those who attempt to make the whole
52) notices the omissions in the Marcionite of O.T. refer to Christ give an opening to
;

gospel (i. 371) accuses Novatianists of self- pagans and heretics,


;
" for while they strain
righteous assurance (i. 100), but is credulous the passages which do not refer to Him, they
as to the scandalous imputations against awaken suspicion as to those which without
the Montanists, much resembling the libels any straining do refer to Him " (ii. 195).
which had been circulated against the early With similar good sense he remarks that St.
Christians (i. 242). His letters illustrate the Paul's concessions to Jewish observance were
activity of Jewish opposition to the Gospel. not a turning back to the law, but an " econ-
They tell us of a few who cavilled at the sub- omy " for the sake of others who had not out-
stitution of bread for bloody sacrifices in the grown it (i. 407). Again, he observes that
Christian oblation (i. 401) of one who criti- church history should relieve despondency as
;

cized the " hyperbole " in John xxi. 25 (ii. 99) to existing evils, and that even the present
;

of another who argued from Haggai ii. 9 that state of the church should remove mistrust
the temple would yet be restored (iv. 17). as to the future (ii. 5). Difficulties about the
Although Paganism, as a system and organized resurrection of the body are met by consider-
power, was defunct (i. 270), yet its adherents ing that the future body will not be like the
were still voluble they called Christianity present, but " ethereal and spiritual " (ii. 43).
;

" a new-fangled scheme of life " (ii. 46), con- He admits that ambition is a natural motive
temned its principle of faith (v. roi), dis- and can be turned to good (iii. 34). Ascetic as
paraged Scripture on account of its " barbaric he was, he dissuades from immoderate fasting,
diction" and its defects of style (iv. 28), lest an " immoderate reaction " ensue (ii. 45).
sneered at the " dead Jesus," the Cross, the Obedience to the government, when it does not
Sepulchre, and the " ignorance of the apostles" interfere with religion, is inculcated, because
(iv. 27), and Isidore heard one of them, a our Lord " was registered and paid tribute
clever rhetorician, bursting into " a broad to Caesar" (i. 48). But he exhorts Theodo-
laugh " at the Passion, and presently put him sius II. (probably soon after his accession)
to silence (iv. 31). He wrote a " little to " combine mildness with authority" (i. 35),
treatise " {XoyidLov) to prove that there was intimating that his ears were too open to
" no such thing as fate" (iii. 253), and a book malicious representations (i. 275) and he ;

"against the Gentiles" to prove that divina- speaks to a " corrector " in the manly tones so
tion was "nonsensical" (ii. 137, 228), thus seldom heard in those days, except from the
using in behalf of religion the " weapons and lips of typical Christians " He who has been
:

syllogisms of its opponents, to their confusion " invested with rule ought himself to be ruled
(iii. 87). Both are now lost. His familiarity by the laws if he himself sets them aside, how

;

with heathen writers among whom he can he be a lawful ruler ? " (v. 383). He con-
Galen (iv. 125) gave him great
criticizes
advantages in discussion with unbelievers
— siders that the genealogy traced through
Joseph proves that Mary also sprang from
"

548 ISIDORUS PELUSIOTA IVO


David (i. 7) that the fourth beast in Daniel and rejoice with them, and would
; desire to
meant the Roman empire (i. 218) that the reach the same point " (v. 398).
;

70 weeks extended from the 20th year of Isidore's letters naturally contain allusions
Artaxerxes to the 8th of Claudius (iii. 89) to the religious customs or opinions of his
;

that Hebrews was by St. Paul (i. 7). He in- age such as pilgrimage to the shrines of the
:

terprets Mark xiii. 32 evasively (i. 117). He saints, as of St. Peter (ii. 5 cf. i. 160 on that
;

corrects the confusion between the two of Thecla, and i. 226 on the martyrs who
Philips (i. 447). His shrewdness and humour, " guard the city" of Pelusium) the bene-;

occasionally tinged with causticity, appear in diction given by the bishop " from his high
various letters. " I hear that you have chair," and the response " And with thy
bought a great many books, and yet know spirit " (i. 122) the deacon's linen garment,
. . .
;

nothing of their contents;" take care lest and the bishop's woollen " omophorion
you be called " a book's-grave," or " moth- which he took off when the gospel was read
feeder " ;then comes a serious allusion to the (i. 136) the right of sanctuary (i. 174)
; the ;

buried talent (i. 127). He tells a bishop that wrongfulness of exacting an oath (i. 155).
he trains the younger ministers well, but His death cannot be placed later than 449
spoils them by over-praising them (i. 202). or 450 (see Tillem. xv. 116).
He hears that Zosimus can say by heart some Two thousand letters of his, we are told, were
passages of St. Basil and suggests that he collected by the zealously anti-Monophysite
should read a certain homily against drunkards community of Acoemetae, or " sleepless
(i. 61). He asks an ascetic why he " abstains" monks, at Constantinople, and arranged in
from meat and feeds greedily on revilings 4 vols, of 500 letters each. This collection
(i. 446). His friend Harpocras, a good appears to be identical with the extant 2,013
" sophist " (whom he recommends for a letters, distributed, without regard to chron-
vacant mastership, v. 458, and urges to keep ology, into 5 books (see Tillem. xv. 117, 847),
his boys from the theatre and hippodrome, of which the first three were edited by Billius,
V. 185), had written a sarcastic " monody," the fourth by Rittershusius, and the fifth by
or elegy, on Zosimus and his fellows, as al- Andrew Schott, a Jesuit the whole being in-
;

ready " dead in sin " Isidore, whom he had cluded in the ed. pub. at Paris in 1638.
; Many
requested to forward it to them, defers doing of the letters are, in effect, repetitions. See
so, lest he should infuriate them against the Bouuy, De S. Isid. Pel. lib. iii. (Nimes, 1885) ;

author ; however, he says in effect, if you also C. H. Turner and E. K. Lake in Journ.
really mean it to go, send it yourself, and then, of Theol. Stud. vol. vi. pp. 70, 270. [w.b.]
if a feud arises, you will have no one else to Ivo, St. (Yvo), June 10, a supposed Persian
blame (v. 52). He remarks that " some bp. in Britain, after whom the town of St.
people are allowed to be tempted to cure them Ives in Hunts was named. His Life was
of the notion that they are great and invincible written by the monk Goscelin when resident
persons" (v. 39). He points out to a palace at Ramsey, towards the end of nth cent.,
chamberlain the inconsistence of being glib based on a more diffused account by a previous
at Scripture quotations and " mad after other abbat Andrew, who collected his information
people's property " {i. 27). But for all this while in the East on a pilgrimage to Jerusalem
keenness and didactic severity, and in spite in 1020. Goscelin's Life is printed in Boll.
of his expressed approval of the use of torture Acta SS. 10 June ii. 288. It describes Ivo as
(i. 116), he impresses us as a man of kindly a missionary bishop, a star of the East, a
disposition, warm in his friendships (see Epp. messenger of the true Sun, divinely marked
i. 161, ii. 31, v. 125). He observes that out for work in Britain. Quitting Persia, he
" God values nothing more than love, for the passed through Asia and lUyricum to Rome,
sake of which He became man and obedient enlightening every place he visited. From
unto death for on this account also the first- Rome he proceeded to Gaul, where the ad-
;

called of His disciples were two brothers miring king and nobles would have detained
. . .

our Saviour thus intimating that He wills all him, but he pushed forward to Britain with
His disciples to be united fraternally " (i. 10). his three companions. There he rescued the
In this spirit he says of slaves, " Prejudice or people from idolatry. The first-fruit of his
fortune . has made them our property, but labours was " a youth of patrician dignity
. .

we are all one by nature, by the faith, by the named Patricius, the son of a Senator."
judgment to come " (i. 471) and he tells how Passing into Mercia, Ivo settled at the vill of
;

a young man came to his cell, asked to see Slepe, 3 English leucae (Gosc. c. 2, § 8) from
him, was introduced by the porter, fell at his Huntedun. There he laboured many years,
feet in tears in silence, then, on being re- died, and was buried. About 100 lustra (c. i,
assured, said that he was the servant of Iron § 4) had passed since the bishop's death, when
the barrister, and had offended his master in a peasant of Slepe struck with his plough a
ignorance, but too deeply for pardon. " I stone sarcophagus, within which were found,
cannot think," writes Isidore, " that the true besides human remains, a silver chalice and
Christian Iron, who knows the grace that has insignia of the episcopal rank. Slepe being
set all men free, can hold a slave " {oIk^.ttjv one of the estates of the abbey of Ramsey, 8
ix^Lv. i. 142). This tenderness is in harmony leucae (c. 2, § 8) distant, abbat Eadnoth was
with the candour (" si sainte et si belle," says informed of this. The same night a man of
Tillemont, xv. 104) with which he owns that Slepe saw in a vision one robed as a bishop,
when he has tried to pray for them who have with ornaments like those in the sarcophagus,
deliberately injured him, he has found him- who said he was St. Ivo and wished to be
self doing so " with his lips only." " Not removed to the abbey, with two of his com-
that I doubt that some have attained that panions, whose burial-places he described.
height of excellence rather, I; rejoice at The translation was accordingly eftected, and
IVO JACOBUS or JAMES 549

on the spot where the saint was found a church in Capgrave being another abridgment. One
was dedicated to him, connected with which of the MSS. mentioned by Hardy purports
was a priory as a cell of the parent abbey. to be the very Life by abbat Andrew referred
The spot was thenceforth known as St. Ives. to by Goscelin. [c.h.]
A later hand adds that temp. Henry I. the
relics of the two companions were re-trans-
lated to St. Ives. As Ramsey abbey was
founded about 991 or a little earlier {Mon. Jacobus (4) or James, bp. of Nisibis in Meso-
Hist. Brit. 580 d ; Monast. Angl. ii. 547), potamia, called " the Moses of Mesopotamia,"
Eadnoth the first abbat {Liber Eliens. ed. born at Nisibis or Antiochia Mygdoniae to-
Stewart, p. 188) would be living c. 1000 (the wards the end of 3rd cent. He is said to have
common date of the translation is looi). been nearly related to Gregory the Illuminator,
Reckoning back roo lustra or 400 years (com- the apostle of Armenia. At an early age he
puting by the four-year lustrum), we arrive at devoted himself to the life of a solitary, and
A.D. 600 as aboutthe period of Ivo's death, and the celebrity he acquired by his self-imposed
this is the year given by Florence of Worcester austerities caused Theodoret to assign him
(Chron. in M. H. B. 526). His mission at the first place in his Religiosa Historia or
Slepe must thus be placed c. 580-600, which —
Vitae Patrum where he is entitled 6 fxeyas.
nearly corresponds with the reign of the em- During this period he went to Persia for
peror Maurice, with whom Diceto (in Gale, iii. intercourse with the Christians of that country
559) makes him contemporary. Thus Ivo's and to confirm their faith under the persecu-
Mercian mission preceded the arrival of tions of Sapor II. Gennadius {de Script. Eccl.
Augustine by about half a generation and c. i) reports that James was a confessor in
anticipated by some 70 years the conversion the Maximinian persecution. On the vacancy
of Mercia as narrated in Bede. The obvious of the see of his native city he was compelled
improbability of this leaves the monks of by the popular demand to become bishop.
Ramsey responsible for the legend. His episcopate, according to Theodoret, was
Possibly there may be here a lingering signalized by fresh miracles.
tradition of old British Christianity and a In 325 he was summoned to the council of
reminiscence of its Oriental origin, leaving Nicaea (Labbe, Concil. ii. 52, 76). A leading
the period out of the question. It would not part is ascribed to him by Theodoret in its
be surprising if a British remnant should have debates (Theod. u.s. p. 1114)- He is com-
survived in that locality as late as the Con- mended by Athanasius, together with Hosius,
quest. There are indications that Britons Alexander, Eustathius, and others (adv. Anan.
did actually maintain themselves in E. t. i. p. 252). According to some Eastern ac-
Mercia and the fastnesses of the fens long counts, James was one whom the emperor
after the conversion of the English race. Constantine marked out for peculiar honour
Moreover, the name of Patrick gives the story (Stanley, Eastern Church, p. 203). His name
a Celtic look, and the locality might have occurs among those who signed the decrees
been a sort of eastern Glastonbury. The of the council of Antioch, in Encaeniis, a.d.
Celtic element in the first conversion of the 341, of more than doubtful orthodoxy (Labbe,
Mercian Angles was likely to prolong the Concil. ii. 559), but no mention of his being
vitality of Celtic traditions. If there was present at this council occurs elsewhere
Celtic blood surviving in the fens when Ram- (Tillem. Mem. eccl. t. vi. note 27, les Arensi;
sey was founded, the Oriental colouring of the Hefele, Councils, ii. 58, Eng. tr.). That the
legend is accounted for. The stone sarco- awfully sudden death of Arius at Constanti-
phagus may have been a genuine Roman nople, on the eve of his anticipated triumph,
relic, furnishing a material basis for the story A.D. 336, was due to the prayers of James of
and suggesting the occasion. If the above Nisibis, and that on this emergency he had
inferences are not unreasonable, the legend of exhorted the faithful to devote a whole week
St. Ivo contains a reminiscence that the Chris- to uninterrupted fasting and public supplica-
tian missionaries who reached Britain from tion in the churches, rests only on the au-
the East came by way of Gaul and of the thority of one passage, in the Religiosa His-
tradition of their having been sent from Rome. toria of Theodoret, the spuriousness of which
Slepe is found in Domesday and is still the is acknowledged by all sound critics. The
name of one of the manors of St. Ives. gross blunders of making the death of the
The priory of St. Ives, the ruins of which heresiarch contemporaneous with the council
survive, is described in Monast. Angl. ii. 631. of Nicaea, and of confounding Alexander of
In the time of Brompton (Twysd. p. 883) no Alexandria with Alexander of Constantinople,
saint in England was so eminent as St. Ivo prove it an ignorant forgery. In the account
at Ramsey for the cure of diseases. of the death of Arius obtained by Theodoret
The story was written again by John of from Athanasius (Theod. H. E. i. 14 Soz. ;

Tynemouth in 14th cent., in whose Sanctilo- H. E. ii. 20) no mention is made of James,
gium, before the MS. was burnt, it stood No. nor in that given by Athanasius in his letter
70 (Smith, Cat. Cotton MSS. p. 29). It was to the bishops. As bp. of Nisibis James was
one of those adopted by Capgrave in 15th the spiritual father of Ephrem Syrus, who
cent, for his Nova Legenda (if. 199) and so is was baptized by him and remained by his
preserved. This version states that the pope side as long as he lived. Milles, bp. of Susa,
commissioned him to Britain. The MS. Lives visiting Nisibis to attend a synod for settling
of Ivo are mentioned by Hardy (Desc. Cat. i. the differences between the bps. of Seleucia
184-186), and the Life by Goscelin exists as a and Ctesiphon, c. 341, found James busily
Bodleian manuscript in a fuller form than the erecting his cathedral, towards which, on his
recension given by the Bollandists, the Life return, Milles sent a large quantity of silk

550 JACOBUS SARUGENSIS JACOBUS SARUGENSIS


from Adiabene (Assemani, Bibl. Or. torn. i. p. spirited eulogium by his disciple Georgius,
1 86). On
the attempt, three times renewed, perhaps a bishop of the Arabs. The other
of Sapor II. to make himself master of Nisibis, two, which are anonymous and later than
A.D. 338, 346, 350, James maintained the faith loth cent., are in close agreement with it.
of the inhabitants in the divine protection, According to them, Jacobus was born at Kur-
kindled their enthusiasm by his words and tom on the Euphrates, a.d. 452, and was taught
example, and with great military genius and in one of the schools of Edessa (according to
administrative skill thwarted the measures Mares the Nestorian).
of the besiegers. For the tale of the final The anonymous Life (Vat.) states that
siege of 350, which lasted three months, and Jacobus was made bp. of Batnae (" urbis
of the bishop's successful efforts to save his Sarug") when 67^ years old, a.d. 519, and
city, see Gibbon, c. xviii. vol. ii. pp. 385 ff. that he died 2J years afterwards, i.e. a.d.
or De Broglie, L'Eglise et V Empire, t. iii. 521. Before a.d. 503, JoshuaStylites tells us.
pp. 180-195. See also Theod. t(.s. p. 1118; Jacobus was a periodeutes or visitor of the
H. E. ii. 26 Theophan. p. 32.
; Nisibis was district of Batnae, a middle rank between the
quickly relieved by Sapor being called away episcopate and the priesthood. Cf. Ep. 16 in
to defend his kingdom against an inroad of the Brit. Mus. Cod. dclxxii. The Stylite adds
the Massagetae. James cannot have long that Jacobus composed many homilies on
survived this deliverance. He was honourably Scripture, psalms, and hymns which proves
;

interred within the city, that his hallowed his fame already established in 503.
remains might continue to defend it. When Renaudot (t. ii. Liturgg. Orienit.) has
in 363 Nisibis yielded to Persia, the Christians charged Jacobus with Monophysitism, a
carried the sacred talisman with them. charge which Assemani and Abbeloos shew to
(Theod. M.S. p. 11x9 Soz. H. E. v. 3
; Gen- ; be unwarranted. Timotheus of Constanti-
nad. M.S. c. i.) nople (fl. 6th cent, ad init.) calls him " ortho-
Gennadius speaks of James as a copious dox," Isaacus Ninivita and Joannes Maro
writer, and gives the titles of 26 of his treat- quote him as such, and Joshua the Stylite, his
ises. Eighteen were found by Assemani in contemporary, calls him venerable. The
the Armenian convent of St. Anthony at Maronites, always hostile to Nestorians and
Venice, together with a request for some of Jacobites, honour him as a saint. Further,
his works from a Gregory and James's reply. he began his episcopate under J ustin, by whose
Their titles de Fide, de Dilectione, de orders Severus was driven from Antioch,
Jejunio, de Oratione, de Bella, de Devoiis, Philoxenos from Hierapolis, and other heretics
de Poenitentia, de Resurreciione, etc. corre- — from Mesopotamia and Syria. Had Jacobus
spond generally with those given by Genna- been a Monophysite, he would have shared
dius, but the order is different. In the same their fate. Not a single Catholic writer of the
collection Assemani found the long letter of 5th, 6th, or 7th cent., says Assemani, has so
Jamestothe bishops of Seleucia andCtesiphon, accused him. Bar-hebraeus and the Life in
on the Assyrian schism. It is in 31 sections, the Brit. Mus., indeed, allege that he corn-
lamenting the divisions of the church and municated with Severus, and Dionysius in his
the pride and arrogance which caused them, Chronicon asserts that St. Jacobus of Sarug
and exhorting them to seek peace and concord. would not communicate with Paul of Antioch,
These were all published with a Latin trans- because the latter confessed the two natures.
lation, and a learned preface establishing their But Dionysius is contradictory in his dates.
authenticity, and notes by Nicolas Maria Some passages of the extant hymns speak of
Antonelli in 1756 also in the collection of
; the single nature of Christ, but may be inter-
the Armenian Fathers, pub. at Venice in 1765, polated. There is direct evidence that after
and again at Constantinople in 1824. The the council of Chalcedon the Monophysites
Latin translation is found in the Palres Apos- began to tamper with texts (cf. Evagr. iii. 31).
tolici of Caillau, t. 25, pp. 254-543. The Thev even attributed whole works, written in
liturgy bearing the name of James of Nisibis, their own interests, to such men as Athanasius
said to have been formerly in use among the and Gregory Thaumaturgus. Jacobus Edes-
Syrians (Abr. Ecchell. Not. in Catal. Ebed- senus testifies that a certain poem was falsely
Jesu, p. 134 Bona, Liturg. i. g) is certainly ascribed by the Jacobite sect to the bp. of
;

not his, but should be ascribed to James of Batnae shortly after his decease (Bar-hebr.
Sarug (Renaudot, Lit. Or. t. ii. p. 4). James Horr. My St. ad Gen. vi.). A silly poem against
of Nisibis is commemorated in Wright's Syrian the council of Chalcedon (Cod. Niir. 5 fol. 139)
Martyrology, and in the Roman martyrology, is proved by internal evidence to be spurious.
July 15. Assemani, Bibl. Or. t. i. pp. 17 sqq., His writings in general supply ample proof
186, 557, 652 Tillem. Mem. eccl. t. vii. of orthodoxv on the doctrines in question.

;
;

Ceillier, Ant. eccl. t. iv. pp. 478 sqq. Fabri-


;
Works. He was a very voluminous writer.
cius, Bibl. Graec. t. ix. p. 289 Cave, if js/. Lit. Bar-hcbraeussays that he employed 70 amanu-
;

t. 1. p. 189. [E.V.] enses in writing" his homiletic poems, of which


Jacobus (13) Sarugensis, bp. of Batnae, a 760 exist, besides expositions, epistles, hyrnns,
little town in the district of Sarug in Osrhoene. and psalms. Georgius, in his panegyric, gives
He enjoyed an extraordinary reputation for a list of his poetic writings which treat of the
learning and holiness and was sainted alike by great men of O.T., of angels, and of the
orthodox and heretics. The Syrian liturgies mysteries of the Son of God. The anonymous
commemorate him with St. Ephraim as " os Life (Vat.) states that his homilies (mirn're)
eloquentissimum et columnam ecclesiae." numbered 763. Of these many may be lost ;

Two Lives are extant in the Vatican and most of those which survive are unedited.
one in the Brit. Mus. (Cod. dcccclx. 46, dated Prose Works. —
(i) An anaphora or liturgy
A.D. 1197). The oldestjl and best is the (Renaud. Lit. Or. ii. 556-566) beginning D^ms
JACOBUS or JAMES BARADAEUS JACOBUS or JAMES BARADAEUS 551

Pater, qui es tranquillitas ! also found in old saddle-cloths, in which, the better to dis-
Ethiopic (Brit. Mus. Cod. cclxi. ii, "Ana- guise his spiritual functions from the unfriend-
phora of holy Mar J acob the Doctor, of Batnan ly eyes of those in power, this indefatigable
of Serug." Also Codd. cclxiii. and cclxxiii.). propagator of his creed performed his swift and
(2) An order of Baptism one of four used
; secret journeys over Syria and Mesopotamia.
by the Maronites (Assemani, Cod. Lit. ii. 309). James Baradaeus is stated by John of
{3) An order of Confirmation [ih. iii. 184). Ephesus to have been born at Tela Mauzalat,
(4) A number of epistles— the Brit. Mus. otherwise called Constantina, a city of Os-
Cod. dclxxii. (dated a.d. 603) contains 34 in a rhoene, 55 miles due E. of Edessa, towards the
more or less perfect state, including (a) Ep. close of 5th cent. His father, Theophilus
to Samuel, abbat of St. Isaacus at Gabiila on ; Bar-Manu, was one of the clergy of the place.
the Trinity and Incarnation. " The Father In pursuance of a vow of his parents, James,
unbegotten, the Son begotten, the Spirit pro- when two years old, was placed in that
ceeding from the Father, and receiving from monastery under the care of abbat Eustathius,
the Son." (b) Ep. to the Himyarite Chris- and trained in Greek and Syriac literature and
tians, (c) Ep. to Stephen bar-Sudail of in the strictest asceticism (Land, Anecdot. Syr.
Edessa, proving from reason and Scripture t. ii. p. 364). He became remarkable for the
the eternity of heaven and hell, (d) Ep. to severity of his self-discipline. Having on the
Jacobus, an abbat of Edessa, explaining Heb. death of his parents inherited their property,
X. 26, I. John V. 16, etc. (e) Ep. to bp. including a couple of slaves, he manumitted
Eutychianus against the Nestorians. them, and made over the house and estate to
(5) Six Homilies on Nativity, Epiphany,
: them, reserving nothing for himself [ib. 366).
Lent, Palm Sunday, The Passion, The Resur- He eventually became a presbyter. His fame
rection (Zingerle, Sechs Homilien des heilig. spread over the East and reaclied the empress
Jacob von Sarug, Bonn, 1867). Theodora, who was eagerly desirous of seeing
Poetic Works- —
Assemani gives a catalogue him, as one of the chief saints of the Mono-
of 231, with headings and first words. Very physite party of which she was a zealous
few have been printed. The subjects are partisan. James was with much difficulty
chiefly the personages and events of O. and induced to leave his monastery for the imperial
N. T., esp. the words and deeds of Christ. city. Arriving at Constantinople, he was re-
Jacobus is very fond of an allegorical treat- ceived with much honour by Theodora. But
ment of O.T. themes. the splendour of the court had no attrac-
Wright's Cat. Syr. MSS., pp. 502-525, gives tions for him. He retired to one of the
an account of upwards of 40 MSS. and fragments monasteries of the city, where he lived as a
of MSS., containing metrical discourses, and complete recluse. The period spent by him
letters and a few homilies in prose, by St. at Constantinople —
15 years, according to John
Jacobus. Jacobus Edessenus classed the bp. of Ephesus —was a disastrous one for the
of Batnae with St. Ephraim, Isaacus Magnus, Monophysite body. Justinian had resolved
and Xenaias Mabugensis, as a model writer of to enforce the Chalcedonian decrees univer-
Syriac. Assem. Bibl. Or. i. 283-340 Cave, ii. ;
sally, and the bishops and clergy who refused
no; Abbeloos, de Vitd et Scriptt. S. Jacobi them were punished with imprisonment,
Batn. Sarugi in Mesop. Episc. (Lovan. 1867) ;
deprivation, and exile. Whole districts of
Matagne, Act. Sanct. xii. Oct. p. 824 Bickell, ; Syria and the adjacent countries were thus
Consp. Syr. 25, 26. [c.j.b.] deprived of their pastors, and the Monophy-
Jacobus (15) or James [Al Baradaeus sites were threatened with gradual extinction.
Baradai, Burdoho, Burdeono, Burdeana, or For ten years many churches had been desti-
Burdeaya, also Phaselita, or Zanzalus), or- tute of the sacraments, which they refused to
dained by the Monophysites bp. of Edessa receive from what were to them heretical
(c. A.D. 541), with oecumenical authority over hands. The extreme peril of the Monophy-
the members of their body throughout the sites was represented to Theodora by the
East. By his indomitable zeal and untiring sheikh Harith, and by her instrumentality the
activity this remarkable man rescued the recluse James was drawn from his cell and
Monophysite community from the extinction persuaded to accept the hazardous and
with which persecution by the imperial power laborious post of the apostle of Monophysitism
threatened it, and breathed a new life into in the East. A considerable number of
what seemed little more than an expiring Monophysite bishops from all parts of the
faction, consecrating bishops, ordaining clergy, East, including Theodosius of Alexandria,
and uniting its scattered elements in an Anthimus the deposed patriarch of Constan-
organization so well planned and so stable that tinople, Constantius of Laodicea, John of
it has subsisted unharmed through all the Egypt, Peter, and others, who had come to
many political and dynastic storms in that Constantinople in the hope of mitigating the
portion of the world, and preserves to the displeasure of the emperor and exciting the
present day the name of its founder as the sympathies of Theodora, were held by Justin-
Jacobite church of the East. Materials for his ian in one of the imperial castles in a kind of
Life are furnished by two Syriac biographies honourable imprisonment. By them James
by his contemporary, John of Asia, the Mono- was consecrated to the episcopate, nominally
physite bp. of Ephesus ordained by him, as bp. of Edessa but virtually as a metropoli-
printed by Land (Anecdota Syriaca, vol. ii. tan with oecumenical authority. The date is
pp. 249-253, pp. 364-383), and by the third uncertain, but that given by Assemani (a.d.
part of the Eccles. History of the same author 541) is probably correct. The result proved
(Payne Smith's trans, pp. 273-278, 291). the wisdom of the choice. Of the simplest
The surname Baradaeus is derived from the mode of life, inured to hardship from his
ragged mendicant's garb patched up out of earliest years, tolerant of the extremities of
"

552 JACOBUS or JAMES BARADAEUS JACOBUS or JAMES BARADAEUS


hunger and fatigue, " a second Asahel for nople to which a section of them belonged,
fleetness of foot " (Abulpharagius), fired with " Condobandites " (John of Ephesus, H. E.
an unquenchable zeal for what he regarded i. 31, V. 1-12 ; trans, u.s. pp. 49-65). Each
as the true faith, with a dauntless courage that anathematized the other, James denouncing
despised all dangers, James, in his tattered Conon and his companion as "Tritheists," and
beggar's disguise, traversed on foot the whole they retaliated by the stigma of " Sabellian."
of Asia Minor, Syria, Mesopotamia, and the A still longer and more widespreading
adjacent provinces, even to the borders of difference arose between James and Paul,
Persia, everywhere ordaining bishops and whom he had ordained patriarch of Antioch
clergy, by his exhortations or his encyclical {H. E. i. 41, p. 81). Paul and the other three
letters encouraging his depressed co-religion- leading bishops of the Monophysites had been
ists to courageously maintain their faith summoned to Constantinople under colour of
against the advocates of the two natures, and taking measures for restoring unity to the
organizing them into a compact spiritual body. church, and, provingobstinatein the adherence
By his indefatigable labours " the expiring to theirown creed, were thrown into prisonfor a
faction was revived, and united and per- considerable time and subjected to the harsh-
petuated. .The speedof the zealous mission-
. . est treatment. This prolonged persecution
ary was promoted by the fleetest dromedaries broke their spirit, and one by one they all
of a devout chief of the Arabs the doctrine
; yielded, accepting the communion of John the
and discipline of the Jacobites were secretly patriarch of Constantinople and the " Synod-
established in the dominions of Justinian, and ites," as the adherents of the Chalcedonian
each Jacobite was compelled to violate the decrees were contemptuously termed by their
laws and to hate the Roman legislator opponents, " lapsing miserably into the
(Gibbon, vol. vi. p. 73, ed. 1838). He is stated communion of the two natures " {ib. i. 41, ii.
to have ordained the incredible number of i-q, iv. 15). Paul, stung with remorse for his
80,000 clergy. John of Ephesus says 100,000 cowardice, escaped into Arabia, taking refuge
(Land, Anecdot. Syr. ii. 251), including 8g with Mondir, son and successor of Harith.
bishops and two patriarchs. His wonderful On hearing of his defection James at once cut
success in reviving the moribund Monophysite Paul off from communion but at the end of
;

church aroused the emperor and the Catholic three years, on receiving the assurance of his
bishops. Orders were issued and rewards contrition, his act of penitence was laid before
offered for his apprehension. But, in his the synod of the Monophysite church of the
beggar's garb, aided by the friendly Arab East, and he was duly and canonically restored
tribes and the people of Syria and Asia, he to communion by James, who notified the fact
eluded all attempts to seize him, and lived by encyclic letters {ib. iv. 15). Paul's rehabi-
into the reign of Tiberius. The longer of the litation caused great indignation among the
two Lives of James, by John of Ephesus (Land, Monophysites at Alexandria. They clam-
U.S. pp. 364-383), must be consulted for the oured for his deposition, which was carried
extent and variety of his missionary labours into effect by Peter, the intruded patriarch,
and for the miracles which illustrated them. in violation of all canonical order the patri- ;

James failed miserably when he attempted arch of Antioch (Paul's position in the Mono-
to govern the vast and heterogeneous body he physite communion) owning no allegiance
had created and organized. The simplicity to the patriarch of Alexandria {ib. iv. 16).
and innocence of his character, as described James allowed himself to be persuaded that
by his contemporary John of Ephesus (H. E. if he were to visit Alexandria the veneration
iv. 15), disqualified him for rule, and put him felt for his age and services would bring to
in the power of " crafty and designing men an end the unhappy dissension between the
about him, who turned him every way they churches of Syria and Egypt, and though
chose, and used him as a means of establishing he had denounced Peter, both orally and in
their own powers." His unhappy dissensions writing, he was induced not only to hold
with the bishops he had ordained clouded the communion with him but to draw up instru-
closing portion of James's long life. The ments of concord and to give his formal assent
internecine strife between the different sec- to the deposition of Paul, only stipulating that
tions of the Monophysite party is fully de- it should not be accompanied by any excom-
tailed by John of Ephesus, who records with munication {ib. 17). The intelligence was
bitter lamentation the blows, fighting, mur- received with indignation and dismay in Syria
ders, and other deeds " so insensate and unre- on James's return. The schism which re-
strained that Satan and his herds of demons sulted between the adherents of James and
alone could rejoice in them, wrought on both Paul, A.D. 576, " spread like an ulcer " through
sides by the two factions with which the the whole of the East, especially in Constanti-
believers —
so unworthy of the name were — nople. In vain did Paul entreat James to
rent," provoking " the contempt and ridicule discuss the matters at issue between them
of heathens, Jews, and heretics" {H. E. iv. calmly, promising to abide by the issue. In
30). For a full account see John of Ephesus, vain did Mondir put himself forward as a peace-
op. cit. (Payne Smith's trans, pp. 48 sqq., 81 maker. James shrank from investigation,
sqq., 274 sqq.). and caused an obstinate refusal to be returned
One of these party squabbles was between to all overtures of accommodation (ib. 20,
James and the bps. Conon and Eugenius, 21). Wearied out at the
last, and feeling
whom he had ordained at Alexandria the
former for the Isaurian Seleucia, the latter for
— necessity for putting an end to the violence
and bloodshed which was raging unchecked,

Tarsus who became the founders of the James suddenly set out for Alexandria, but
obscure and short-lived sect of the " Conon- never reached it. On the arrival of his party,
ites," or, from the monastery at Constanti- including several bishops, at the monastery of
"

JOANNES I. JOANNES 553

Cassianus or Mar-Romanus on the Egyptian (Simplic. Ep. 17, July 15, a.d. 482, in Mansi,
frontier, a deadly sickness attacked them, and vii. 992). Without waiting for the reply of
James himself fell a victim to it, July 30, 578. Simplicius, Zeno instructed the civil author-
His episcopate is said to have lasted 37 years, ities to expel John. Thus driven from
and his life, according to Renaudot {Lit. Or. Alexandria, Talaia went to Illus at Antioch,
ii- 342), 73 years. and thence to Rome (Liberat. c. 18). There
A liturgy bearing the name of " Jacobus he was favourably received by Simplicius, who
Bordayaeus " is given by Renaudot {Lit. Or. at once wrote to Acacius on his behalf {Ep. 18,
t. ii. pp. 332-341), who confuses him, as Ba- Nov. 6, 482, in Mansi, vii. 995). Acacius
ronius does {ad arm. 535), with Jacobus Bara- replied that he did not recognize John, but had
daeus. That this liturgj' is correctly assigned received Mongus into communion by command
to the Jacobite church is proved by the special of Zeno ; and Simplicius rejoined, blaming
memorial of their founder, " memento Domine Acacius in no measured terms (Liberat. c. 18).
omnium pastorum et doctorum ecclesiae Simplicius died March 2, 483, but John was
orthodoxae . praecipue vero Jacobi Bor-
. . warmly supported by his successor Felix III.,
daei," as well as by the special condemnation who cited Acacius to answer certain charges
of those who " impiously blasphemed the brought against him by Talaia, and wrote to
Incarnation of the Word, and divided the the emperor praying him to withdraw his
union in nature {unionem in natiira) with countenance from Mongus and restore John
the flesh taken from the holy mother of God" {Libell. Citationis ad Acac. Mansi, vii. 1108 ;

{ib. 337, 338). The Catechesis, the chief dog- Felic. Ep. 2, A.D. 483, in ib. 1032). On the re-
matical formulary of the Jacobites, " totius turn of his legates from Constantinople, Felix
fidei Jacobiticae norma et fundamentum held a synod at Rome which excommunicated
(Cave, Hist. Lit. i. 524), though adjudged to Acacius for his persistent support of Mongus
be his by Cave, Abraham Ecchellensis, and {Ep. 6, July 28, 484, in ib. 1053). F'elix wrote
others, together with the Encomium in Jaco- to inform Zeno of this, and to let him know-
bitas, and an Arabic Homily on the Annun- that "the apostolic see would never consent
ciation, are discredited by Assemani on philo- to communion with Peter of Alexandria, who
logical and chronological grounds. [e.v.] had been justly condemned long since " {Ep.
Joannes (11) I., surnamed Talaia, patri- 9, Aug. 1, 484, in ib. 1065). Felix did not
arch of Alexandria and afterwards bp. of obtain his end, and John seems to have re-
Nola. From having been a presbyter in the mained at Rome until the death of Zeno and
monastery of the Tabennesians at Canopus the succession of Anastasius, a.d. 491, to
near Alexandria, he was known as Tabennesi- whom John had shewn kindness at Alexandria
otes (Pagi, Critic, s.a. 482, xix. Mansi, vii.
; after his shipwreck. Presuming that Anas-
1178 b). Previous to the expulsion of Salo- tasius would not be unmindful of this, John
faciolus from his see of Alexandria, and after went to Constantinople to appeal to him. On
his restoration, John held the office of oecono- hearing of his arrival Anastasius at once
mus under him {Brevtc. Hist. Eutych. Mansi, ordered him to be exiled, and John made his
vii. 1063 ; Liberat. Breviar. c. 16 in Migne, escape and returned to Rome (Theophan. s.a.
Patr. Lat. Ixviii. 1020). Shortly afterwards 484, p. 118 ; Victor Tunun. s.a. 494, in Migne,
John was sent by the Catholics of Alexandria to Patr. Lat. Ixviii. 948). Felix died Feb. 25, 492,
the emperor Zeno, to thank him for the restora- but his successor, Gelasius I., equally interest-
tion of Salofaciolus, and to pray that when a ed himself in John (Gelas. Epp. 13, 15, in
vacancy occurred in the see the}' might choose Mansi, viii. 49 seq., c. 493-495).
his successor. He obtained an edict from the All these eSorts to procure his reinstatement
emperor complying with this request (Evagr. were of no avail; John never returned to
H. E. iii. 12), and after his return became Alexandria, but received, as some compensa-
greatly distinguished as a preacher in Alex- tion, the see of Nola in Campania, where, after
andria {Brevic. Hist. Eutych. u.s.). Salo- many years, he died in peace (Liberat. c.
faciolus died A.D. 482, and the Catholics then 18). During his episcopate there he appar-
elected ]o'hn(ib.). The Monophysites elected ently wrote an d7roXo7('a to Gelasius, in which
Peter Mongus, then in exile (Liberat. c. 17 ;
he anathematized the Pelagian heresy, Pela-
Theophan. s.a. 476). John sent the usual gius himself, and Celestius, as well as Julia-
synodic announcement of his election to nus of Eclana. Phot. Biblioth. Cod. liv. Le ;

Simplicius, bp.of Rome, but neglected todirect Quien, Or. Christ, ii. 417, 419; Remondini, Del
one to AcACius, bp. of Constantinople, only Nolana Eccl. Storia, iii. 56-59 Ughelli, Ital.
;

sending one to his friend Illus, who was then Sacr. vi. 251 Tillem. Mem,, xvi. 313 seq.
; ;

in that city, with instructions to make what Hefele, Concil. ii. 604 seq.[t.w.d.]
use of it he thought fit, and accompanying it Joannes (31), bp. of Antioch
(429-448).
with a letter addressed to the emperor. When Our knowledge of him commences with his
the magistrianus whom John employed as his election as successor to Theodotus in the see
messenger to Constantinople arrived there, he of Antioch. In 429 the bishops of the East,
found that Illus had gone to Antioch, whither according to the aged Acacius of Beroea,
he followed him with the synodic. On receiv- congratulated themselves on having such a
ing it at Antioch Illus delivered the synodic leader (Labbe, iii. 386) but the troubles
;

to Calandio, then recentlv elected to the which rendered his episcopate so unhappily
patriarchate of that see (Liberat. cc. 17, 18). famous began immediately to shew them-
Acacius, taking offence at not receiving a selves. His old companion and fellow-towns-
synodic from John, joined the Monophysites man Nestorius had just been appointed to the
in their appeal to the emperor against him, see of Constantinople, and had inaugurated
and prevailed upon Zeno to write to Simpli- his episcopate with a sermon in the metro-
cius, praying him not to acknowledge John politan church repudiating the term " Mother
554 JOANNES JOANNES
of God," deoToKos. Celestine, the Roman contained {ib. p. 838, No. xxxvi. Ep. Alexandri
pontiff, summoned a synod of Western bishops Episc). His letter to Firmus is preserved
in Aug. 430, which unanimously condemned (Baluz. p. 691, c. iv.), in which he expresses
the tenets of Nestorius, and the name of John abhorrence of the " capitula," which he con-
of Antioch appears in the controversy. The siders so unlike Cyril both in style and doctrine
support of the Eastern prelates, of whom the that he cannot believe they are his, and calls
patriarch of Antioch was chief, being of great upon Firmus, if they reach Pontus, to get
importance, Celestine wrote to John, Juve- them abjured by the bishops of the province,
nal of Jerusalem, Rufus of Thessalonica, and without naming the supposed author. He
Flavian of Philippi, informing them of the rejoices over Nestorius's public acceptance of
decree passed against Nestorius (Baluz. p. 438, the test-word, in the two sermons he has sent
c. XV. ; Labbe, iii. 376). At the same time him, which has quieted the storm and restored
Cyril, patriarch of Alexandria, wrote to John tranquillity to the church of Constantinople.
calling upon him, on pain of being separated John was also careful to have Cyril's heretical
from the communion of the West, to accept formularies refuted by able theologians.
Celestine's decision and unite with him in [Andreas Samosatensis Theodoret.]
;

defending the faith against Nestorius (Baluz. The breach between the two patriarchs was
p. 442, c. xviii. Labbe, iii. 379). Such a complete. Each denounced the other as
;

declaration of open hostility against an old heretical. A larger arena was supplied by the
friend, of whose virtual orthodoxy he was general council summoned by Theodosius to
convinced, was very distasteful to John. He meet at Ephesus at Pentecost, 431. John's
dispatched a letter full of Christian persua- arrival having been delayed more than ,§
siveness, by the count Irenaeus, to Nestorius, fortnight beyond the time fixed for the"*
in his own name, and that of his brother- opening of the council, he wrote that Antioch
bishops Archelaus, Apringius, Theodoret, was 42 days' journey from Ephesus, at the
HeliadeB, Melchius, and the newly appointed fastest. He had been travelling without
bp. of Laodicea, Macarius, entreating him not interruption for 30 days he was now within
;

to plunge the church into discord on account five or six stages of Ephesus. If Cyril would
of a word to which the Christian ear had condescend to wait a little longer, he hoped
become accustomed, and which was capable in a veryfewdays to arrive (f6.p. 451, c.xxiii.).
of being interpreted in his own sense. He Cyril would not delay. On Mon. June 22, 431,
enlarged on the danger of schism, warning 198 bishops met in the church of St. Mary the
Nestorius that the East, Egypt, and Mace- Virgin, and in one day Nestorius was tried,
donia were about to separatefrom him, and ex- condemned, sentenced, deposed, and excom-
horted him to follow the example of Theodorus municated. Five days later. Sat. June 27,
of Mopsuestia in retracting words which had John arrived with 14 bishops. His reasons
given pain to the orthodox, since he really for delay were quite sufficient. His patri-
held the orthodox faith on these points (Baluz. archate was a very extensive one. Hi?
p. 445, c. xxi. Labbe, iii. 390 seq.). John attendant bishops could not leave their
;

wrote also to count Irenaeus, Musaeus bp. of churches before the octave of Easter, Apr. 26.
Antarada, and Helladius bp. of Tarsus, who The distances some of them had to travel did
were then at Constantinople, hoping to avail not allow them to reach Antioch before May
himself of their influence with Nestorius 10. John's departure had been delayed by
(Baluz. p. 688). Nestorius's reply indicated a famine at Antioch and consequent outbreaks
no intention of following John's counsels. of the populace their progress was impeded
;

He declared himself orthodox in the truest by floods (Labbe, iii. 602) the transport broke
;

sense. He had no rooted objection to the down many of the bishops were aged men, un-
;

term OeordKos, but thought it unsafe, because fit for rapid travelling. There was nothing to
accepted by some in an Arian or Apollinarian support Cyril's accusation that John's delay
sense. He preferred XpiffTordKos, as a middle was intentional.
term between it and dvOpwirordKos. He pro- Cyril sent a deputation of bishops and
posed to defer the discussion to the general ecclesiastics to welcome John, apprise him in
council which he hoped for {tb. p. 688). the name of the council of the deposition of
The divergence of the Antiochene and Nestorius and that he must no longer regard
Alexandrian schools of thought in their way him as a bishop {ib. iii. 761). John, who had
of regarding the mystery of the Incarnation already heard from count Irenaeus of the
lay at the root of this controversy about the hasty decision of the council, refused to admit
term, and it was brought into open manifesta- the deputation, and they complained that they
tion by the publication of Cyril's twelve were rudely treated by the guard whom
" anathematisms " on the teaching of Nesto- Irenaeus had sent to do honour to and protect
rius. Nestorius, on receiving these fulmina- the Eastern bishops. The deputation were
tions at the end of 430, at once sent copies of compelled to wait for some hours at the door
them to John, together with his two sermons of the house where John took up his quarters,
of Dec. 13 and 14, in which he professed to exposed to the insults of the soldiers and the
have acknowledged Mary as the " Mother of attendants of the Orientals [ib. 593, .764),
God " (ib. p. 691, c. iv.). John declared him- while a rival council was being held within.
self horror-stricken at the Apollinarian heresy The bishops who sided with John had hastened
which characterized Cyril's articles. He made to his lodgings, where, " before they had
them known far and wide, in Cappadocia, shaken the dust off their feet, or taken off
Galatia, and through the East generally, their cloaks " (Cyril. Ep. ad Colest. Labbe, m.

accompanying them with earnest appeals 663), the small synod the " conciliabulum
"

of 43
to the bishops and the orthodox everywhere their enemies tauntingly called it
to openly repudiate the grave errors they bishops, passed a sentence of deposition on
JOANNES JOANNES 555
Cyril and Memnon, bp. of Ephesus, and of a presbyter of Constantinople, in defiance of
excommunication on all the other prelates of the protest of John and his party, was conse-
the council, until they should have condemned crated (Oct. 25) bp. of the imperial see in his
Cyril's " capitula," which they declared room. Memnon and Cyril were reinstated :

tainted not only with ApoUinarian, but with the former to remain at Ephesus as bishop ;

Arian and Eunomian heresy (ib. 596, 637, 657, Cyril and the other bishops to return home.
664 passim). The sentences of excommunica- John and the Orientals were only not formally
tion and deposition were posted up in the city. condemned because the dogmatic question
There John vouchsafed an audience to the had not been discussed. Before he retired
deputies of the other council. They communi- vanquished, John delivered a final remon-
cated its decrees as to Nestorius, but received, strance. The churches of Chalcedon were
they asserted, no reply but insults and blows closed against the Oriental bishops, but they
{ib. 764). Returning to Cyril they formally had obtained a spacious hall for public worship
complained of John's treatment, of which they and preaching. Large crowds assembled to
shewed marks on their persons. The council listen to the powerful sermons of Theodoret
immediatelydeclared J ohn separatedfrom their and the milder exhortations of John. The
communion until he explained this conduct. mortification with which John left Chalcedon
John's attempts to reduce Cyril and his was deepened by the events of his homeward
adherents to submission by his own authority journey. At Ancyra he found that letters
proved fruitless, and he had recourse to the from its bp. Theodotus, who was one of the
emperor and the ecclesiastical power at Con- eight deputies of the council, as well as from
stantinople. Several letters were written to Firmus of Caesarea, and Maximian the newly
Theodosius, to the empresses Pulcheria and appointed bp. of Constantinople, had com-
Eudocia, the clergy, the senate, and the manded that he and his companions should be
people of that city (Labbe, iii. 601-609 ;
regarded as excommunicate.
Liberat. c. vi.) to explain the tardiness of From Ancyra John proceeded to Tarsus.
John's arrival and to justify the sentence Here, in his own patriarchate, he immediately
pronounced on Cyril, Memnon, and the other held a council, together with Alexander of
bishops. Theodosius wrote to the council, Hierapolis and the other deputies, at which
declaring their decisions null (Labbe, iii. 704). he confirmed the deposition of Cyril and his
The letter reached Ephesus June 29. John brother-commissioners (Baluz. 840, 843, 847).
and his friends welcomed it with benedictions, Theodoret and the others engaged never to
assuring the emperor that they had acted consent to the deposition of Nestorius. On
from pure zeal for the faith which was im- reaching Antioch, about the middle of Dec,
perilled by the Apollinarianism of Cyril's John summoned a very numerously attended
" anathematisms." Relying on imperial council of bishops, which pronounced a fresh
favour, John strove in vain to persuade the sentence against Cyril and wrote to Theo-
Ephesians to demand a new bishop in the dosius, calling upon him to take measures for
place of Memnon. Meantime, the legates of the general condemnation of the doctrines of
Celestine had arrived from Rome, and the Cyril, as contrary to the Nicene faith which
council, strengthened by their presence and they were resolved to maintain to the death
the approbation of the bp. of Rome, pro- (Socr. H. E. vii. 34 Liberat. c. vi.
; ; Baluz.
ceeded, July 16, to summon John before them. p. 741, c. xxxix.). Soon after his return to
Their deputation was informed that John Antioch John, accompanied by six bishops,
could hold no intercourse with excommuni- visited the venerable Acacius of Beroea, whose
cated persons {ib. 640). On this the council sympathy in the controversy had greatly
declared null all the acts of John's " concili- strengthened and consoled him. The old man
abulum," and, on his persisting, separated him was deeply grieved to hear the untoward
and the bishops who had joined him from the result of tiieir proceedings.
communion of the church, pronounced them The battle was now over and the victory
disqualified for all episcopal functions, and remained with Cyril. His return to Alexan-
published their decree openly {ib. 302). dria was a triumphal progress (Labbe, iii. 105).
Two counter-deputations from the opposite But the victory had been purchased by a
parties presented themselves to Theodosius schism in the church. Alexandria and An-
in the first week of September at Chalcedon. tioch were two hostile camps. For three
John himself did not shrink from an open de- years a bitter strife was maintained. The
fence of the orthodoxy of Nestorius, declaring issue, however, was never doubtful. John,
his deposition illegal and exposing the heresy alarmed for his own safet}^ soon began to
of Cyril's anathematisms (Baluz. pp. 837, 839). shew symptoms of yielding. The emperor,
To support their evidently failing cause, John at the urgent demand of Celestine, had pro-
and his fellow-deputies wrote to some leading nounced the banishment of Nestorius. John
prelates of the West, the bps. of Milan, might not unreasonably fear a demand for his
Aquileia, and Ravenna, and Rufus of Thessa- own deposition. It was time he should make
lonica, laying before them in earnest terms the it clear that he had no real sympathy with the
heretical character of Cyril's doctrines (Theod. errors of the heresiarch. The pertinacity
Ep. 112; Labbe, iii. 736), but apparently with which Nestorius continued to promulgate
without favourable result. The victory was the tenets which had proved so ruinous to
substantially with the Cyrillian party. 'After the peace of the church irritated John. The
six audiences the emperor, weary of the fruit- newly elected bp. of Rome, Sixtus, who had
less strife, declared his final resolve. Nes- warmly embraced Cyril's cause, in a letter
torius, gerierally abandoned by his supporters, addressed to the prelates of the East in the
was permitted to retire to his former monas- interests of reunion, a.d. 432, declared that
tery of St. Euprepius at Antioch. Maximian, John might be received again into the Catholic
556 JOANNES JOANNES
church, provided he repudiated all whom the bp. of Constantinople in place of Nestorius,
council of Ephesus had deposed and proved sometime bishop, but deposed for teaching
by his acts that he really deserved the name which merited anathema. He also wrote a
of a Catholic bishop (Coteler. Mon. Eccl. Graec. circular letter of communion addressed to pope
i. 47). Cyril was disposed to limit his require- Sixtus, Cyril and Maximian (Labbe, iii. 1087,
ments to the condemnation of Nestorius and 1090, 1094, 1154 ; Cyril, Ep. 41). The East
the recognition of Maximian. John sum- and West were once more at one. Cyril tes-
moned Alexander of Hierapolis, Andrew of tified his joy in the celebrated letter to John,
Samosata, Theodoret, and probably others, to commencing " Let the heavens rejoice, and
Antioch and held a conference to draw up let the earth be glad " (Labbe, iii. 1106-1111).
terms of peace. It was agreed that if Cyril John wrote to Theodosius thanking him for
would reject his anathematisms they would the peace which his efforts had procured, and
restore him to communion. Propositions for begged him to render it universal by restoring
union were dispatched by John to Cyril. the deposed bishops.
John and his fellow-bishops next sought the This accommodation was far from being
intervention of Acacius of Beroea, who was satisfactory to the extreme members of either
universally venerated, in the hope that his party. Isidore of Pelusium and other adher-
influence might render Cyril more willing to ents of Cyril expressed a fear that he had made
accept the terms (Baluz. 756, c. liii. ; Labbe, too large concessions; while John had given
iii. 1 1 14). Cyril, though naturally declining great offence to many of his warmest sup-
to retract his condemnation of Nestorius's porters, who accused him of truckling to
tenets, opened the way for a reconciliation with powerful advocates of a hollow peace lo.
John. John, eager to come to terms with his secure his position as bishop. Theodoret
formidable foe, declared himself fully satisfied refused to abandon Nestorius. Alexander of
of Cyril's orthodoxy ; his explanation had re- Hierapolis broke off communion with his
moved all the doubt his former language had patriarch John (Baluz. pp. 799, 832). During
raised (Labbe, iii. 757, 782). Paul, bp. of the next two years John sought to force the
Emesa, was dispatched by John to Alexandria bishops of his patriarchate to accept the terms
to confer with Cyril and bring about the much- of peace. Theodoret's unwillingness to aban-
desired restoration of communion (ib. 783). don Nestorius and rooted dislike to Cyril's
These events took place in Dec. 432 and articles raised a coldness between him and
Jan. 433. Cyril after some hesitation signed John which was much strengthened by an
a confession of faith sent him by John, de- unwarrantable usurpation on John's part,
claring in express terms " the union of the two who at the close of 433 or beginning of 434 had
natures without confusion in the One Christ, ordained bishops for Euphratesia. This ag-
One Son, One Lord," and confessing " the gression caused serious irritation among the
Holy Virgin to be the Mother of God, because bishops of the province, who, led by Theo-
God the Word was incarnate and made man, doret, withdrew from communion with John.
and from His very conception united to Him- John unhappily continuing his acts of usurpa-
self the temple taken from her" (Labbe, iii. tion, the disaffection spread. Nine provinces
1094 ; Baluz. pp. 800, 804
; Liberat. 8, p. 30), subject to the patriarch of Antioch renounced
and gave Paul of Emesa an explanation of his communion with John, who had at length
anathematisms which Paul approved (Labbe, to request the imperial power to force them
iii. 1090). Cyril then required acceptance of into union by ejecting the bishops who
thedepositionof Nestorius, recognition of Max- refused the agreement he had arranged with
imian, and acquiescence in the sentence passed Cyril. Theodoret, yielding to the entreaties
by him on the four metropolitans deposed as of James of Cyrus and other solitaries of his
Nestorians terms acceded to by Paul. Each diocese, consented to a conference with John
;

party was desirous of peace and disposed to and was received by his old friend with great
concessions. Paul, placing in Cyril's hand a cordiality. All reproaches were silenced, and
written consent to all his requirements, was as John did not insist on his accepting the
admitted to communion and allowed to preach sentence against Nestorius, he embraced the
at the Feast of the Nativity (Cyril. Ep. 32, 40;
concordat, and returned to communion with
Labbe, iii. 1095; Liberat. c. 8, p. 32). John, John and Cyril (ib. pp. 834-836). The way
however, sent letters stating that neither he towards peace had been smoothed by the
nor the other Oriental bishops could consent death of Nestorius's successor, Maximian,
so hastily to the condemnation of Nestorius, Apr. 12, 434, and the appointment as archbp.
from whose writings he gave extracts to prove of Constantinople of the saintly Proclus, who,
their orthodoxy (Baluz. p. 908). Cyril and in the early part of the Nestorian controversy,
the court began to weary of so much inde- had preached the great sermon on the Theo-
cision, and, to bring matters to a point, a tokos (Socr. H. E. vii. 40; Baluz. p. 851).
document drawn up by Cyril and Paul was Proclus's influence was exerted in favour of
sent for John to sign (Cyril, Epp. 40, 42), peace, and so successfully that all the remon-
together with letters of communion to be strant bishops, except Alexander of Hierapolis
given him if he consented. Fresh delays and five others, ultimately accepted the con-
ensued, but at last, in Apr. 433, the act giving cordat and retained their sees. Alexander
peace to the Christian world was signed and was ejected in Apr. 435. John made a strong
dispatched to Alexandria, where it was an- representation to Proclus in 436 that Nestorius
nounced by Cyril in the cathedral on Apr. 23. in his retirement was persisting in his blas-
John, in a letter to Cyril, stated that in signing phemies and perverting many in Antioch and
this document he had no intention to derogate throughout the East (Baluz. p. 894), and form-
from the authority of the Nicene Creed, and ally requested Theodosius to expel him from
expressly recognized Maximian as the lawful the East and deprive him of the power of doing
;

JOANNES JOANNES II. 557

mischief (Evagr. H. E.'i.j; Theophan. p. 78). Joannes (113), surnamed Silentiarius, bp.
An edict was accordingly issued that all the of Colonia and afterwards one of the most
heresiarch's books should be burnt, his fol- celebrated of the monks. His Life was written
lowers called " Simonians " and their meetings by Cyril of Scythopolis. He was born in 454,
suppressed (Labbe, iii. 1209 Cod. Theod.
;
at Nicopolis in Armenia. His father and
XVI. V. 66). The property of Nestorius was mother, noble and wealthy Christians, gave
confiscated and he was banished to the remote him a Christian education. John consecrated
and terrible Egyptian oasis. himself to God when 18 years old, built a
Nestorian doctrines were too deeply rooted church at Nicopolis in honour of the Virgin
in the Eastern mind to be eradicated by Mary, and taking ten brethren set up a monas-
persecution. Cyril, suspecting that the union tery. In his 28th year (c. 481) the bp. of
was more apparent than real and that some of Sebastia, metropolitan of the district, at the
the bishops who had verbally condemned Nes- request of the people of Colonia, consecrated
torius still in their hearts cherished his teach- him bishop of that see against his will. He
ing, procured orders from the Imperial continued his monastic life, specially avoiding
government that the bishops should severally the baths. " He thought it the greatest of
and explicitly repudiate Nestorianism. A all virtues never to be washed"; "determined
formula of Cyril's having been put into John's never to be seen, even by his own eyes, without
hands for signature, John wrote in 436 or 437 his clothes." His character had the happiest
to Proclus to remonstrate against this multi- effect on his own family.
plicity of tests which distracted the attention When he had been bp. ten years he went to
of bishops from the care of their dioceses Constantinople with an appeal to the emperor.
(Labbe, iii. 894). Here he embarked on a ship unknown to his
Fresh troubles speedily broke out in the friends, made his way to Jerusalem, and dwelt
East in connexion with the writings of the there in a hospital for old men, wherein was
greatly revered Theodore of Mopsuestia and an oratory of George the Martyr, but was
Diodorus of Tarsus, whose disciple Nestorius supernaturally guided to the community of
had been. The bishops and clergy of Armenia St. Sabas, who presided over 150 anchorets
appealed to Proclus for his judgment on the and received John, and appointed him to some
teaching of Theodore (ib. v. 463). Proclus petty office. A guest-house was being built ;

replied by the celebrated doctrinal epistle the former bp. of Colonia, the noble of the
known as the " Tome of St. Proclus." To this Byzantine court, fetched water from a torrent,
were attached some passages selected from cooked for the builders, brought stones and
Theodore's writings, which he deemed de- other materials for the work. Next year the
serving of condemnation (ib. 51 1-5 13). This steward appointed John to the humble duty
letter he sent first to John requesting that he of presiding over the kitchen. At the end of
and his council would sign it (Liberat. p. 46 ;
three years he was appointed steward. Sa-
Facundus, lib. 8, c. i, 2). John assembled his bas, ignorant of his ecclesiastical rank, con-
provincial bishops at Antioch. They ex- sidering it high time for John to be ordained,
pressed annoyance at being called on for took him to Jerusalem, and introduced him
fresh signatures, as if their orthodoxy was to archbp. Elias. John was obliged to con-
still questionable, but made no difficulty about fess that he was a bishop. Archbp. Elias
signing the " Tome," which they found worthy wondered at his story, summoned Sabas, and
of all admiration, both for beauty of style and excused John from ordination, promising that
the dogmatic precision of its definitions. But from that day he should be silent and nobody
the demand for the condemnation of the ap- should molest him. He never left his cell
pended extracts called forth indignant pro- for four years afterwards, and was seen by
tests. They refused to condemn passages none but the brothers who served him,
divorced from their context, and capable, even except at the dedication of a church in the
as they stood, of an orthodox interpretation. community, when he was obliged to pay his
A fresh schism threatened, but the letters of respects to archbp. Elias. The patriarch was
remonstrance written by John and his council captivated with his conversation and held him
to Proclus and Theodosius put a stop to the in lifelong honour. In 503 John went into
whole matter. Even Cyril, who had striven the desert of Ruba. Here he remained silent
hard to procure the condemnation of Theodore, about seven years, only leaving his cave every
was compelled to desist by the resolute front third or fourth day to collect wild apples, the
shewn by the Orientals, some of whom, John usual food of the solitaries.
told him, were ready to be burnt rather than Sabas eventually persuaded John to return
condemn the teaching of one they so deeply to his old community when 56 years old,
revered (Cyril. Epp. 54, 199). Theodosius A.D. 510. Here he continued to live a life
wrote to the Oriental bishops that the church that seemed to the people of those days abso-
must not be disturbed by fresh controversy lutely angelical and many stories are told of
and that no one should presume to decide his miraculous endowments. He must have
anything unfavourable to those who had died c. 558. Cyril. Mon. ap. AA. SS. Bolland.
died in the peace of the church (Baluz. p. 13 Mai. iii. 232 ;Baron. Annul, ad ann. 457,
928, c. ccxix.). The date of this transaction Iviii. etc. ;Ceillier, xi. 277. [w.m.s.]
was probably 438. It is the last recorded Joannes (124) II., surnamed Cappadox,
event in John's career. His death occurred 27th bp. of Constantinople, 517-520, appoint-
in 441 or 442. Tillem. Mem. eccl. t. xiv. xv. ed by Anastasius after an enforced condemna-
CeiWiev, Auteurs eccl.; Cave, Hist. Lit. i. 412; tion of Chalcedon. His short patriarchate is
Neander, Church. Hist. vol. iv., Clarke's ed. ;
memorable for the celebrated Acclamations of
Milman, Latin Christ, vol. i. pp. 141-177; Constantinople, and the reunion of East and
Bright, Hist, of Church, pp. 310-365. [e.v.] West after a schism of 34 years. At the death
558 JOANNES II. JOANNES 11.

of Timothy, of Cappadocia, whom he had


J ohn shall do the same to-day. We must take the
designated his successor, was presbyter and faith as our inviolable foundation; it will aid us
chancellor of the church of Constantinople. to reunite the churches. Let us then glorify
On July 9, 518, the long reign of Anastasius with one mouth the holy and consubstantial
came to a close, the orthodox Justin succeed- Trinity." But the people v>'ent on crying
ing. On Sunday, July 15, the new emperor madly, " This instant, let none go out ! I
entered the cathedral, and the archbishop, ac- abjure you, shut the doors ! You no longer
companied by twelve prelates, was making his fear Amantius the Manichee Justin reigns,
!

way through the throngs that crowded every why fear Amantius?" So they continued. The
corner. As he came near the raised dais patriarch tried in vain to bring them to reason.
where the pulpit stood shouts arose, " Long It was the outburst of enthusiasm and excite-
live the patriarch Long live the emperor
! ! ment long pent up under heterodox repression.
Why do we remain excommunicated ? Why It bore all before it. The patriarch was at
have we not communicated these many years ? last obliged to have inserted in the diptychs
You are Catholic, what do 3'ou fear, worthy the four councils of Nicaea, Constantinople,
servant of the Trinity ? Cast out Severus the Ephesus, and Chalcedon, and the names of
Manichee ! O
Justin, our emperor, you win ! Euphemius and Macedonius, patriarchs of
This instant proclaim the synod of Chalcedon, Constantinople, and Leo, bp. of Rome. Then
because Justin reigns." These and other the multitude chanted for more than an hour,
cries continued. The procession passed into " Blessed be the Lord God of Israel, for He
hath visited and "
the inclosure, but the excited congregation redeemed His people !

went on shouting outside the gates of the The choir assembled on the raised platform,
choir in similar strains " You shall not and, turning eastwards, sang the Trisagion,
:

come out unless you anathematize Severus," the whole people listening in silence. Wtien
referring to the heretical patriarch of Antioch. the moment arrived for the recitation of the
The patriarch John, having meanwhile gained names of the defunct bishops from the
time for thought and consultation, came out diptychs, the multitude closed in silence about
and mounted the pulpit, saying, " There is the holy table; and when the deacon had read
no need of disturbance or tumult nothing the new insertions, a mighty shout arose,
;

has been done against the faith we recognize " Glory be to Thee, O Lord "
; !

for orthodox all the councils which have con- To authenticate what had been done, John
firmed the decrees of Nicaea, and principally assembled on July 20 a council of 40 bishops,

these three Constantinople, Ephesus, and who happened to be at the capital. The four
the great council of Chalcedon." general councils and the name of Leo, bp. of
The people were determined to have a more Rome, were inscribed in the diptychs. Severus
formal decision, and continued shouting for of Antioch was anathematized after an ex-
several hours, mingling with their former cries amination of his works in which a distinct
such as these " Fix a day for a festival in
: condemnation of Chalcedon was discovered.
honour of Chalcedon " " Commemorate ! John wrote to John of Jerusalem and to
the holy synod this very morrow " The ! Epiphanius of Tyre, telling them the good
people being thus firm, the deacon Samuel news of the acclamations and the synod. His
was instructed toannounce the desiredfestival. letters were accompanied by orders from
Still the people continued to shout with all Justin to restore all who had been banished
their might, " Severus is now to be anathe- by Anastasius, and to inscribe the council of
matized anathematize him this instant, or
;
Chalcedon in the diptychs. At Jerusalem
there's nothing done! " The patriarch, seeing and at Tyre there was great joy. Many other
that something must be settled, took counsel churches declared for Chalcedon, and during
with the twelve attendant prelates, who agreed the reign of Justin 2,500 bishops gave their
to the curse on Severus. This extemporaneous adhesion and approval. Now came the re-
and intimidated council then carried a decree conciliation with Rome. The emperor Justin
by acclamation " It is plain to all that
: wrote to the pope a fortnight after the scene
Severus in separating himself from this church of the acclamations, begging him to further
condemned himself. Following, therefore, the the desires of the patriarch John for the
canons and the Fathers, we hold him alien and reunion of the churches. John wrote saying
condemned by reason of his blasphemies, and that he received the four general councils, and
we anathematize him." The domes of St. that the names of Leo and of Hormisdas him-
Sophia rang with shouts of triumph and the self had been put in the diptychs. A deputa-
crowd dispersed. It was a day long remem- tion was sent to Constantinople with instruc-
bered in Constantinople. tions that Acacius was to be anathematized by
The next day the promised commemoration name, but that Euphemius and Macedonius
of Chalcedon took place. Again as the might be passed over in silence.
patriarch made his processional entrance and The deputies arrived at Constantinople on
approached the pulpit clamours arose: " Re- Mar. 25, 519. Justin received the pope's
store the relics of Macedonius to the church ! letters with great respect, and told the am-
Restore those exiled for the faith Let the ! bassadors to come to an explanation with the
bones of the Nestorians be dug up Let the ! patriarch, who at first wished to express his
bones of the Eutychians be dug up Cast ! adherence in the form of a letter, but agreed
out the Manichees Place the four councils
! to write a little preface and place after it the
in the diptychs Place Leo, bp. of Rome, in
! words of Hormisdas, which he copied out in
the diptychs Bring the diptychs to the
! his own handwriting. Two copies were sent
pulpit " This kind of cry continuing, the
! by the legates to Rome, one in Greek, the other
patriarch replied, " Yesterday we did what in Latin. Emperor, senate, and all present
was enough to satisfy my dear people, and we were overjoyed at this ratification of peace.

JOANNES III. JOANNES IV. 559

The sting of the transaction still remained canon, an abridgment of his former work, with
;

they had now to efface from the diptychs the the addition of a comparison of the imperial
names of five patriarchs and two emperors rescripts and civil laws (especially the Novels
Acacius, Fravitta, Euphemius, Macedonius, of Justinian) under each head. Balsamon
and Timotheus Zeno and Anastasius. All cites this without naming the author, in his
;

the bishops at Constantinople gave their con- notes on the first canon of the TruUan council
sent in writing so did all the abbats, after of Constantinople.
;
In a MS. of the Paris
N
some had raised a difficulty. On Easter Day library the omocanon is attributed to Theo-
the pacification was promulgated. The court doret, but in all others to John. Theodoret
and people, equally enthusiastic, surged into would not have inserted the " apostolical
St. Sophia. The vaults resounded with ac- canons" and those of Sardica, and the style
clamations in praise of God, the emperor, St. has no resemblance to his. In 1661 these
Peter, and the bp. of Rome. Opponents, two works were printed at the beginning of
who had prophesied sedition and tumult, were vol. ii. of the Bibliotheca Canonica of Justel-
signally disappointed. Never within memory lus, at Paris. Photius {Cod. Ixxv.) mentions
had so vast a number communicated. The his catechism, in which he established the
emperor sent an account of the proceedings Catholic teachingof the consubstantial Trinity,
throughout the provinces and the ambassa- saying that he wrote it in 568, under Justin XL,
dors forwarded their report to Rome, saying and that it was afterwards attacked by the
that there only remained the negotiations with impious Philoponus. Fabricius considers that
Antioch. John wrote to Hormisdas to con- the Digest or Harmony and the Nomocanon
gratulate him on the great work, and to offer are probably rightly assigned to John the
him the credit of its success. Soon after, Lawyer. Fabricius, xi. loi, xii. 146, 193,
Jan. 19, 520, John died. 201, 209 Evagr. H. E. iv. 38, v. 13, Pair. Gk.
;

Baronius, ad ami. 518, x.-lxxvii. 520, vii. Ixxxvi. pt.2; Theoph. Chronogr. 204, etc., Patr.
;

Fleury, ii. 573 ; Acta'SS. Bolland. 18 Aug. iii. Gk. cviii. Niceph. Callist. iii. 455, Patr. Gk.
;

655;'rheoph. Chronogr. § 140, Pair. Gk. cviii.; cxlvii. Victor Tunun. Patr. Lat. Ixviii. 937
; ;

Niceph. Callist.iii. 456, Patr. Gk. cxlvii.; Pho- Baronius, ad. ann. 564, xiv. xxix. 565, xvii. ; ;

tius, iii. § 287 a, Patr. Gk. ciii. Avitus, Ep. vii.


; 578, 5 Patr. Constant, in Acta SS. Bolland.
;

Patr. Lat. lix. 227; Hormisdas, Epp., Patr. Lat. Aug. i. p.* 67. [w.M.s.]
Ixiii. p. 426, etc. [w.m.s.] Joannes (126) IV. (surnamed The Faster,
Joannes (125) III., surnamed Scholasticus, Jejunator, sometimes also Cappadox, and
''The Lawyer," 32nd bp. of Constantinople thus liable to be confused with the patriarch
(Apr. 12, 565-Aug. 31, 577), born at Sirimis, John II.), 33rd bp. of Constantinople, from
in the region of Cynegia, near Antioch. There Apr. II, 582 to Sept. 2, 595. He was born at
was a flourishing college of lawyers at Antioch, Constantinople of artisan parents, and was
where he entered and did himself credit. a sculptor. In 587 or 588 he summoned
This was suppressed in 533 by Justinian. the bishops of the East in the name of " the
John was ordained and became agent and Oecumenical Patriarch " to decide the cause
secretary of his church. This would bring of Gregory, archbp. of Antioch, who was ac-
him into touch with the court at Constanti- quitted and returned to his see. Pelagius II.,
nople. When Justinian, towards the close of bp. of Rome, solemnly annulled the acts of
his life, tried to raise the sect of the Aphthar- this council. In 593 we find John severely
todocetae to the rank of orthodoxy, and deter- blamed by pope Gregory for having allowed an
mined to expel the blameless Eutychius for Isaurian presbyter named Anastasius, accused
his opposition, the able lawyer-ecclesiastic of of heresy, to be beaten with ropes in the church
Antioch, who had already distinguished him- of Constantinople.
self by his great edition of the canons, was In 595 the controversy was again rife about
chosen to carry out the imperial will. the title of universal bishop. Gregory the
Little is known of his episcopal career. Great wrote to his legate Sabinianus forbidding
Seven months after his appointment Justinian him to communicate with John. In the case
died. The new emperor, Justin II., was of a presbyter named Athanasius, accused of
crowned by the patriarch, Nov. 14, 565. being to some extent a Manichee, and con-
John himself died shortly before Justin. demned as such, Gregory shews that the
One of the most useful works of that period accuser was himself a Pelagian, and that by
was the Digest of Canon Law formed by John the carelessness, ignorance, or fault of John
at Antioch. Following some older work the Faster the Nestorian council of Ephesus
which he mentions in his preface, he aban- had actually been mistaken for the Catholic,
doned the historical plan of giving the decrees so that heretics would be taken for orthodox,
of each council in order and arranged them on and orthodox condemned as heretics

!

a philosophical principle, according to their His Writings. Isidore of Seville {de Script.
matter. The older writers had sixty heads. Eccl. 26) attributes to him only a letter, not
He reduced them to fifty. To the canons of now extant, on baptism addressed to St.
the councils of Nicaea, Ancyra, Neocaesarea, Leander. John, he says, " propounds nothing
Gangra, Antioch, Ephesus, and Constanti- of his own, but only repeats the opinions of
nople, already collected and received in the the ancient Fathers on trine immersion."
Greek church, John added 89 " Apostolical But there are extant four works attributed
Canons," the 21 of Sardica, and the 68 of the to John the Faster. (i) His Penitential,
canonical letter of Basil. Writing to Photius, Libellus Poenitentialis, or, as it is described
pope Nicholas I. cites a harmony of the canons in bk. iii. of the work of Leo Allatius, de
which includes those of Sardica, which could Consensu Utriusque Ecclesiae (Rome, 1655,
only be that of J ohn the Lawyer. When J ohn 4to), Praxis Graecis Praescripta tn Confessione
came to Constantinople, he edited the Nomo- Peragenda. The Greeks of the middle ages
560 JOANNES JOANNES
always attributed this and (2) to John the fessing Christians. Members of all ranks were
Faster. inculpated Phocas, prefect of the capital,
:

(2) Instructio, qua non modo confitens de con- being informed against, poisoned himself.
fessione pie et integre edenda instituitur, sed John was appointed to instruct the accused
etiam sacerdos, qua ratione confessiones excipiat, in Christian doctrine ;and an imperial edict
poenitentiam imponat et reconciliationem prescribed conversion within three months !

praestet informatur. Theophanes tells us that heathens and heretics


(3) Homily on Penitence, Continence, and were to be excluded from public office.
Virginity. Oftenprinted among Chrysostom's From pt. iii. of John's history we learn that
homilies, but now agreed not to be Chrysos- in the 2nd year of Tiberius (a.d. 579), upon
tom's. Montfaucon, Vossius, and Pearson the rumour of a heathen plot to destroy the
held it to be by John the Faster Morel and
; Christians of Baalbec, the emperor ordered
Savile printed it among Chrysostom's works. an officer named Theophilus to suppress
(4) Homily on False Prophets and False paganism in the East. Torture, crucifixion,
Doctrine. Attributed occasionally to Chrysos- the sword, wild beasts, were among the means
tom, by Peter Wastel to John of Jerusalem, employed. Numbers were accused ; the
but by Vossius, Petavius, and Cave to John prisons teemed with victims of every rank ;

the Faster. and a permanent inquisition was established


(5) A
set of Precepts to a Monk, in a MS. at for their trial.
the Paris library. As bp. of Ephesus or " Asia," John appears
Migne reproduces the Penitential, the In- to have supervised all the Monophysite con-
structions for Confession, and the Homily on gregations of Asia Minor. His 30 years of
Penitence in Patr. Gk. Ixxxviii. io8g. See influence at the court of Justinian and hi§
also Baronius, ad. ann. 588-593 A A. SS. high personal qualities gave him very con-
;

BoUand. Aug. i, p. 69 Fleury, ii. bk. xxxiv. siderable authority among his own party. He
;

c. 44, etc. ; Ceillier, xi. 427, etc. Fabricius, tells us (v. i) that in the reign of Justin II.
;

Bibl. Graec. xi. 108, xii. 239. [w.m.s.] he " was dwelling in the royal city and con-
Joannes (160) (called of Asia and of trolling all the revenues of all the congrega-
Ephesus), Monophysite bp. of Ephesus, born tions of the Faithful there and in every place."
c. 516, and living in 585, a Syriac writer whose In a chapter written a.d. 581 he mentions his
chief work was his History of the Church, in old intimacy with Tiberius at the court of
the extant portion of which he describes him- Justin " He and I were often together, and
:

self once as " John, who is called superin- stood with the other courtiers before the
"
tendent of the heathen and Breaker of Idols serene Justin " (iii. 22).
(ii. 4), and twice as " John who is over the John suffered grievously in the persecution
heathen, who was bp. of Ephesus " (ii. 41 instigated first by John Scholasticus, whom he
;

iii. 15). Elsewhere he styles himself, " John calls John of Sirmin, and afterwards by Euty-
bp. of Ephesus" (iv. 45), or simply, "John chius. Together with Paul of Aphrodisias
of Ephesus" (v. i) ; and, lastly, "John of (subsequently patriarch of Antioch), Stephen,
Asia, that is, John of Ephesus " (v. 7). Hence bp. of Cyprus, and the bp. Elisha, John of
John of Ephesus is clearly the historian so Ephesus was imprisoned in the patriarch's
often mentioned by Syriac writers as John palace. In the heated debates which followed,
bp. of Asia, " Asia " meaning the district of the four Monophysite bishops stoutly charged
which Ephesus was the capital. John of Sirmin with breach of the canons in
Dr. Land (Johann von Ephesus der erste annulling the orders of their clergy, and, when
syrische Kirchenhistoriker) discusses his identi- the patriarch demanded of them " a union
fication with one or other of his numerous such as that between Cyril of Alexandria and
namesakes who wrote during the same John of Antioch," declared their willingness
period ; and has pronounced in the negative. provided they might drive out the council of
What we know of the personal history of Chalcedon from the church, as Cyril had
John of Ephesus is gathered from the meagre driven out Nestorius. The vacillating em-
extracts from pt. ii. of his great work, pre- peror, of whom John testifies that for six
served in the Chronicon of Dionysius and years he had been friendly to the " orthodox,"
;

from the extant pt. iii., which is to some attempted to secure peace by drawing up a
extent an autobiography. Dionysius (ap. dogmatic formula, in the shape of an imperial
Assemani, Bibl. Or. 83-90) tells us that John's edict, which he sent to the four captive bishops
birthplace was Amid in N. Mesopotamia. He for revision. Their changes were admitted,
stood high in the confidence of the emperor but the " Nestorians and semi-Nestorians " of
Justinian, by whom he was commissioned in the court —
so John puts it —
scared the timid
542 as " Teacher of the heathen " in the four emperor into further alterations, of which the
provinces of Asia, Caria, Phrygia, and Lydia. chief was an inserted clause, " that the cus-
His success was such that in four years 70,000 toms of the church were to be maintained,"
persons adopted Christianity. In the third which meant that the obnoxious council was
part of his history (ii. 44) John mentions that still to be proclaimed from the diptychs.
Deuterius was 35 years his fellow-labourer, and VVeary of the dispute, and probably not under-
his successor in Caria. Together they had standing its grounds, Justin now signed the
built 99 churches and 12 monasteries. John document, and required the subscription of
tells (iii. 36-37) how the work began among John of Ephesus and his companions. They
the mountains round Tralles. His chief declined, and 33 days passed in constant
monastery, Darira, rose upon the site of a wrangling between them and the patriarch.
famous temple which he had demolished. Meanwhile they were kept under close guard ;

In 546 he was entrusted with an inquiry the patriarch's creatures stripped them of
into the secret practice of pagan rites by pro- everything friends were denied admittance
;
j
JOANNES JOANNES 661

to their prison and their personal followers


;
once more harried and plundered. The first
were also confined in the dungeons of the victim was John of Ephesus (iii. 15), who had
palace. The misery of the four bishops was now lived many years and suffered much in
aggravated by the reproaches of the leading Constantinople. He and his friends were
Monophysite laymen, who supposed that their incarcerated at Christmas in a miserable
obstinacy alone hindered a compromise which prison called the Cancellum (a.d. 578 ?) and ;

would stop the persecution. The cunning after much fruitless argument were finally
patriarch was careful to encourage this belief. ordered to leave the city.
At last his victims gave way, the patriarch It is greatly to our historian's credit that,
promising upon oath that the council of during the bitter strife which raged long
Chalcedon should be sacrificed. The four among the Monophysites themselves, in the
bishops twice communicated with him ; but matter of the double election of Theodore and
when they reminded him of his promise, he Peter to succeed Theodosius as their patriarch
referred them to the pope ; he could not, for of Alexandria, he maintained an honourable
their sakes, risk a schism from Rome. Our neutrality, standing equally aloof from Paul-
historian touchingly describes the sorrow of ites and Jacobites, although his sympathies
himself and his companions over this fraud ;
were with Theodore, the injured patriarch
even their opponents pitied them, until they (iv. 9-48). John wrote his account of this
once more faced them with galling taunts, pernicious quarrel in 583, the 2nd year of
which led to a second imprisonment (i. 17-25). Maurice for he says that it had already
;

The emperor made further fruitless attempts lasted 8 years (iv. 11), and that he is
at conciliation. The upshot of a discussion writing an outline of events from the year of
before the senate was that the four bishops Alexander 886 (a.d. 575) onwards (iv. 13).
boldly uttered their anathema " upon the In his anxiety to heal the schism, John sent
whole heresy of the two natures," and re- 10 epistles to " the blessed Jacob" [Jacobus
nounced communion with their deceivers for Baradaeus], protesting his own neutrality,
ever. Thereupon they were sentenced to and urging reconciliation between the two
" banishment." The sentence was at once factions (iv. 46); and after Jacob's death
carried out. They never saw each other again. (a.d. 581) his party made overtures to John of
John of Ephesus was confined in the hospital Ephesus, then living at the capital, to induce
of Eubulus at Constantinople. Though help- him to recognize Peter of Callinicus as patri-
less from gout and exposed to swarms of arch of Antioch in place of Paul (iv. 45). In
vermin, he was denied all assistance. As he reply the historian rebuked them for violating
lay in his filthy prison, it seemed to him that the canons. John accuses both sides of an
his feverish thirst was slaked and his misery utter want of mutual charity, and an entire
comforted by a heavenly visitant, whose aversion to calm examination of the grounds
coming he describes with much pathos and of their quarrel. He adds that he has briefly
simplicity. After a year he was removed to recorded the main facts from the outset to
an island, where he remained 18 months, the current year, 896 (a.d. 585) —
the latest
when the Caesar Tiberius ordered his release. date observable in his work.
For three years, however, he was under sur-
veillance, until the patriarch died (a.d. 578).
The Ecclesiastical History.
bk. i. c. 3) that he
iii.
— John states
has already written
(pt.

Before the outbreak of this persecution, John a history of the church, " beginning from the
of Ephesus and Paul of Aphrodisias had times of Julius Caesar, as far as to the sixth
argued publicly with Conon and Eugenius, the year of the reign of Justin II., son of the sister
founders of the Cononites, nicknamed Tri- of Justinian." If, as Dr. Payne Smith
theites, in the presence of the patriarch and assumes, pt. i. was a mere abridgment of
his synod, by command of Justin (v. 3). Eusebius, its loss is not a great one. The
Conon had vainly tried to win the support of disappearance of pt. ii. is more unfortunate,
John, who proved to him that he was a as it would probably have furnished much
heretic and afterwards wrote him a letter of important matter for the reign of Justinian.
warning (v. 1-12). Eutychius, who, upon the It brought the history down to 571. Pt. iii.
death of John of Sirmin, was restored to the continues it to c. 585, thus covering the period
patriarchal throne, was hardly more tolerant between the 6th year of Justin II. and the 4th
of Monophysites than its late occupant. Per-of Maurice. It was called forth by the per-
secution was renewed, and John of Ephesus secution above mentioned, which broke out
again met with disgraceful injustice. By in the 6th or 7th year of Justin, and the writer
another imprisonment Eutychius wrung from often apologizes for want of chronological
him the resignation of a property which order, occasional repetitions, and even
Callinicus, a chief officer of the court, had inconsistencies of statement (see esp. i. 3 ii. ;

bestowed, and which John had largely im- 50), as defects due to the stress of untoward
proved and converted into a monastery. circumstances: "This should be known to
After being further deprived of his right of critics many of these stories were penned in
:

receiving five loaves at the public distribu- time of persecution people conveyed away
. . .

tions, for which he had paid 300 darics, John the papers inscribed with these chapters, and
was released. the other papers and writings, into divers
Tiberius, Justin's successor, though unwill- places, and in some instances they rernained
ing to persecute, was overcome by popular hidden so long as two or three years in one
clamour. The mob of the capital groundlessly place or another" (ii. 50). John had no
suspected their new emperor of Arian leanings memoranda of what he had already written,
(iii. 13, 26). An edict was therefore published and never found opportunity for revision.
ordering the arrest of Arians, Manicheans, etc. With these drawbacks, the work possesses
Under cover of this, the " orthodox " were special interest as an original account. John
30
— .

562 JOANNES JOANNES II.

was contemporary with most of the characters his own. In 550 he dug up and burnt the
described he writes of what he himself saw bones of Montanus, Maximilla, and Priscilla.
;

and heard and of doings in which he was the false prophets of Montanism (Extr. ap.
personally concerned. For 30 years he was Dionys.). Herein also he shared the temper
a trusted servant of Justinian and Gibbon of his contemporaries. The spirit of persecu-
;

ivould probably have recognized in the second tion is not the peculiar mark of any age,
part of his history a valuable gauge of the church, or sect. Apart from these blemishes
servility and the malice of Procopius. Had we may recognize in him an historian who sin-
Gibbon possessed the third part of John's cerely loved truth ; a bishop who was upright
work, he would hardly have surmised that and devoted and a man whose piety rested
;

" the sentiments of Justin II. were pure and upon a thorough knowledge of Scripture.
benevolent," or believed that the four last His style, like that of most Syriac writers, is
years of that emperor " were passed in iranquil verbose and somewhat unwieldy, but has the
obscurity " (cf. iii. 1-6) had he read what
; eloquence of simple truth and homely pathos.
John has to say of the worthless stepson of The Third Part of the Ecclesiastical History of
Belisarius he might have rated " the gallant John of Ephestis was first edited from the
Photius " less highly and he would have unique MS. in the Brit. Mus. by Dr. Cureton
;

learned that it was the thoughtless improvid- (Oxf. 1853) — a splendid reproduction of the
ence of Tiberius which forced the unhappy original— and translated into English by Dr.
Maurice to appear a grasping niggard (ct. iii. Payne Smith (Oxf. i860) and into German by
11; V. 20). As regards chronology, Assemani, Schonfelder (Miinchen, 1862). These ver-
who did not love a Monophysite, accuses John sions are of great assistance, many chapters,,
of inaccuracy, asserting that he used a pecu- being defective in the original. [c.j.b.]
liar Greek era, making almost all Justinian's Joannes (216) II., bp. of Jerusalem, 386-417,
acts and his death ten years later than the in succession to Cyril ; a prelate known to
dates assigned by Evagrius, Theophanes, and us chiefly through the invectives of Jerome,
Cedrenus. But in pt. iii. (v. 13) John gives and hence particularly difficult to estimate.
the usual date for Justinian's death Nov. 14, — Imbued with that tendency of Eastern church
876 [565]- Of Theophanes Gibbon has said teachers which formed their chief difference
that he is " full of strange blunders " and " his from those of the Western church, he with
chronology is loose and inaccurate"; his difficulty brought himself to acquiesce in the
verdict in regard to John of Ephesus would condemnation of Origenism or to take any
have been very different. steps against Pelagius, with whom he was
His attitude to the great controversy of his brought in contact at the close of his epis-
day is that of one thoroughly convinced that copacy, and the presence of Jerome and other
his own party holds exclusive possession of immigrants from Italy, and the anti-Origen-
the truth. The Monophysites are " the istic vehemence of Epiphanius of Salamis and
orthodox," " the faithful " their opponents
;
Theophilus of Alexandria, made it impossible
" Synodites," " Nestorians," or at least " half- for him to escape the reproach of laxity and
Nestorians " the synod of Chalcedon is " the
; even at times of heresy.
stumbhng-block and source of confusion of the Born between 350 and 356 (Hieron. Ep.
whole church " " it sunders Christ our God
; Ixxxii. 8, ed. Vail.), he passed as a young man
into two natures after the Union, and teaches some time among the monks of Nitria in
a Quaternity instead of the holv Trinity " (i. Egypt. There he, no doubt, imbibed his
10, 18) ;the four bishops taunt' the patriarch affection for Origen's teaching, and probably
with " the heresy of the two natures, and the became acquainted with two persons who had
blasphemies of the synod, and of the tome of much to do with his own subsequent history
Leo" (i. 18). Yet John does not labour to and with that of the Origenistic controversy
blacken the memory of his adversaries the ;
the monk Isidore (one of the Long Monks)
strong terms in which he speaks of the pride and Rufinus. During the troublous times
of power and savage tyranny of John Scho- before the accession of Theodosius, when
lasticus are warranted or at least excused by Arianism was in the ascendant, he declined,
facts (i. 5, 12, 37) and Baronius denounces
; teste ]eTome (cont. Joan. Jertis. 4), to commu-
John of Sirmin in language equally decided nicate with the orthodox bishops exiled by
(//. E. ad ann. 564). In regard to Eutychius, Valens. But no imputation of Arianism rests
John protests his adherence to truth " Al- : upon him. He was evidently esteemed very
though we declare ourselves opposed to the highly, and of great eloquence (ib. 41) and
excellent patriarch Eutychius, yet from the subtlety of mind. His flatterers compared him
truth we have not swerved in one thing out with Chrysippus, Plato, andDemosthenes (jft. 4)
of a hundred noi: was it from eagerness to
; He was little more than 30 years old (Hieron.
revile and ridicule that we committed these Ep. Ixxxii. 8, ed. Vail.) when chosen to succeed
things to writing " (iii. 22). His impartiality Cyril as bp. of Jerusalem. It was a see of
is manifest in his description of the great great importance, subject in certain respects
schism which rent asunder his own com- to the metropolitan at Caesarea, but acting
munion unsparing in his censure of both
; at times independently ; of great wealth
factions, he refers their wicked and worse [cont. Joan. Jerus. 14), and of great interest
than heathenish rancour to the instigation of for its holy places, which were visited by
devils (iv. 19, 22, 39). Credulous John was, pilgrims from all parts. It had also a special
but credulity was a common attribute of his interest from the settlements of distinguished
age. More serious objection might be persons from the West, which made it during
taken to his approval of the cruelties connected his episcopate a focus of Christian and literary
with the suppression of heathenism (iii. 34) activity, and with two of which, that of
and his intolerance of "heresy" other than Rufinus and Melania on the Mount of Olives,
JOANNES II. JOANNES II. 663
and of Jerome and Paula at Bethlehem, he as to Rufinus, he only says that, if his trans-
was destined to have close but similar rela- lation of the works of Origen implies an accept-
tions. Jerome accuses him of making a gain ance of his opinions (a matter which he leaves
of his bishopric and living in luxury (Comm. to his own conscience), he must see where he
in Joann. c. 14, and Ep. Ivii. 12) but this may ;
can procure absolution. That John was not
be only the common animus of monk against then in familiar communication with Rufinus,
bishop, embittered by momentary resentment. but was with Jerome, may be inferred from
The clergy of Jerusalem were certainly at- the fact that Jerome used this letter in his
tached to him. Rufinus thought it a sufficient controversy with Rufinus [cont. Ruf. ii. 14),
defence of his own faith to say that it was that while Rufinus did not know of its existence,
preached at Jerusalem by the holy bp. John and, when he heard of it, treated it as an
(Ruf. Apol. i. 13). But the most important invention of Jerome (ib. iii. 20). The recon-
testimony is given by the pope Anastasius, in ciliation of John with the monks of Bethlehem
a letter to him in 401, a time when the adver- is further attested by Sulpicius Severus (Dial.
saries of John, Pammachius, and Marcella had i. 8), who had stayed six months at Bethlehem,

access to the pope, and only two or three years and says that John had entrusted to Jerome
after Jerome's Philippic was composed. and his brother the charge of the parish of
Anastasius speaks of the splendour of his Bethlehem. A letter from Chrysostom to
holiness and his divine virtues his eminence
;
John in 404 (Migne's Patr. Gk. vol. Iii.) shews
and his praise are so conspicuous that he can- that he had taken Chrysostom's part then we
;

not find words equal to his merits. He hear nothing more of John for 12 or 13 years,
accounts it an honour to have received praise when the Pelagian controversy brings him
from one of so serene and heavenly a dis- forward once more. Pelagius and Coelestius,
position, the splendour of whose episcopate having come in 415 to Jerusalem, were en-
shines throughout the world (see Vallarsi's countered by Orosius, the friend of Augustine,
Rufinus, pp. 408, 409 Migne's Patr. Lat. xxi.).
;
who had come to visit Jerome, and afterwards
When John became bishop, Rufinus had by the Gaulish bishops Heros and Lazarus.
already been settled on the Mount of Olives Orosius, who recounts these transactions in the
some nine years, and Jerome and his friends first nine chaps, of his Liber de Arbitrii Liber-
were just entering on their work at Bethlehem. tate, addressed himself to John, as did also
At first he lived in impartial friendship with Pelagius but John was not willing to accept
;

them both, seeking out Jerome especially without inquiry the decrees of the council of
(" nos suo arbitrio diligebat," Hieron. Ep. Carthage and resented their being pressed
Ixxxii. II, ed. Vail.), and making use of upon him by Orosius. The two parties were
Rufinus, whom he ordained, as a learned man, in secret conflict for some time, till John
in business which required his special talents. determined on holding a synod to end the
After some six years their peace was disturbed. strife, on July 28, 415. John was the only
A certain Aterbius (Hieron. cont. Ruf. iii. 33), bishop present the rest were presbyters and
;

who by his officious insinuations and imputa- laymen. He shewed some consideration
tions of Origenistic heresy caused the first towards Pelagius, allowing him, though a
breach between Jerome and Rufinus, had, no layman, to sit among the presbyters and ;

doubt, some dealings with the bishop also ;


when there was a clamour against Pelagius
and, probably through him, the suspicions of for shewing disrespect for the name and
Epiphanius, the venerable bp. of Salamis, were authority of Augustine, John, by saying, " I
aroused. When Epiphanius came to Jeru- am Augustine," undertook both to ensure
salem in 394, the strife broke out. For the respect to that great teacher and not to allow
controversy see Epiphanius (1) and Hieronv- his authority to be pressed too far against his
Mus (2). During the dispute between Jerome antagonist. " If," cried Orosius, " you repre-
and Rufinus, John in no way intervened. sent Augustine, follow Augustine's judgment."
Zockler (Hieron. p. 249) thinks him to have John thereupon asked him if he was ready to
inclined rather to the side of Jerome. We become the accuser of Pelagius but Orosius;

certainly find Jerome, in a letter to Theo- declined this duty, saying that Pelagius had
philus, in commendation of his encyclical been condemned by the African bishops, whose
(£/). Ixxxvi., ed. Vail.), pleading for his bishop. decisions John ought to accept. The pro-
John had accepted a person under the ban of ceedings were somewhat confused from the
Theophilus who had come from Jerusalem to necessity of employing an interpreter. Final-
Alexandria, and thus had incurred the wrath ly, it was determined to send a letter to pope
of that fierce prelate but Jerome repre-
;
Innocentius and to abide by his judgment.
sented that Theophilus had sent no letters Meanwhile, John imposed silence upon both
condemnatory of this person, and that it would parties. This satisfied neither. The opinions
be rash to condemn John for a supposed fault of Pelagius continued to be spread by private
committed in ignorance. As regards Rufinus, intercourse, and Augustine wrote to remon-
Johnwrotealettertopope Anastasius, the tenor strate with John against the toleration of
of which can be only dimly inferred from the heresy. On the arrival of the Gaulish bishops
pope's extant reply. J ohn was apparently less Heros and Lazarus, another synod was held
anxious todefendRufinusthantosecurehisown at Diospolis (416) under the presidency of
freedom from implication in the charges made Euzoius, the metropolitan bp. of Caesarea, in
against Rufinus by Jerome's friends at Rome. which John again took part. Augustine, in
Thepope, with fulsome expressions of esteem for his work against Julianus, records the decision
John, bids him put such fears away and judge of this council, which was favourable to
Rufinus for himself. He professes to know Pelagius, but considers his acquittal due to
nothing about Origen, not even who he was, uncertainties occasioned by difference of
while yet he has condemned his opinions and language, which enabled Pelagius to express
;
564 JOANNES in. JOANNES I.

himself in seemingly orthodox words and of Caesarea, gaining a secret interview with
;

both in this work and in his letter to John he the imprisoned bishop, persuaded him to
treats John as a brother-bishop whom he feign assent to Anastasius's requirements and
holds in high esteem. Meanwhile, the more promise, if he would release him from prison,
intemperate partisans of Pelagius resorted to publicly signify, on the following Sunday,
to open violence. The dialogue of Jerome his agreement to the original conditions.
against the Pelagians, though mild compared Anastasius, believing John's professions,
with his other controversial works, incensed liberated him. On the Sunday a vast con-
them, and they proceeded to burn the monas- course assembled, including 10,000 monks.
teries of Bethlehem. The attitude of John Anastasius was present with his officials to
at this time cannot be gathered with any receive the expected submission. John,
certainty. That he was in any way an having ascended the ambo, supported by
accomplice in such proceedings is incredible. Theodosius and Sabas, the leaders of the
Nothing of the sort appears from the letters of monastic party, was received with vociferous
Jerome, though he speaks in a resigned shouts, " Anathematize the heretics " " Con- !

manner of his losses. Complaints, however, firm the synod " When silence was secured,
!

of the ill-treatment of Jerome and the Roman John and his two companions pronounced a
ladiesat Bethlehem reached pope Innocent, who joint anathema on Nestorius, Eutyches,
wrote to John a letter (Hieron. Ep. cxxxvii., Soterichus of the Cappadocian Caesarea, and
ed. Vail.) of sharp rebuke. He does not imply all who rejected the decrees of Chalcedon.
that John had been accessory to the violence ;
Anastasius, utterly unprepared for this open
but, considering that a bishop ought to be violation of the compact, was too mucb^
able to prevent such acts or at least relieve terrified by the turbulent multitude, evidently"^
their consequences, he bids him take care that prepared for violence, and hastily escaped to
no further violence is done, on pain of the Caesarea. The emperor, though furious, had
laws of the church being put in force against too much on his hands to attend to ecclesias-
him. The view here taken of these transac- tical disputes at Jerusalem, and John was
tions, which is that of Zockler (Hieron. pp. allowed to go unpunished. The death of
310-316), is opposed by Thierry (St. Jerome, Anastasius in 518, and the succession of
bk. xii. c. iii.), who looks upon John as a Justin, changed the whole situation.
partisan of Pelagius and as the enemy of Orthodoxy was now in the ascendant. The
Jerome to the end. John was now at the whole East followed the example of the
close of his career. Possibly the letter of capital, and John could, without fear of con-
Innocentius never reached him, for it can sequences, summon his synod to make the
hardly have been written, as Vallarsi shews same profession of faith with his brother-
(pref. to Hieron. siih. litt. cxxxv.-cxxxviii.), patriarch in the imperial city, and was
before4i7, and John died (see Ceillier, vii. 497, received into communion by pope Hormisdas,
etc.) on Jan. 10 in that year. After a troubled at the request of Justin (ib. c. 60). John died
episcopate of 30 years and a life of from 60 to A.D. 524, after an episcopate of 11 years.
65 years, failing health may have prevented Theophan. Chronogr. p. 136 Tillem. Mem. eccl.
;

his exercising full control in this last and most xvi. 721 ; Fleury, H. E. livre xxi. cc. 27, 28 ;

painful episode of his career. Le Quien, Or. Christ, iii. 185. [e.v.]
Several works are attributed to him (see Joannes (346) I., bp. of Rome after
Ceillier, vii. 97, etc.). Gennadius (30) men- Hormisdas, Aug. 13, 323, to May 18, 526.
tions one which he wrote in his own defence ;
The emperor Justin, having during the
but no work of his is extant. He must, pontificate of Hormisdas restored the churches
therefore, always be viewed through the in the East to orthodoxy and communion
medium of other, mostly hostile, writers, and with Rome, continued to shew his orthodox
through the mists of controversy, [w.h.f.] zeal by the persecution of heretics. Having
Joannes (217) III., bp. of Jerusalem, 313- already suppressed the Eutychians and
524. On the banishment of Elias, bp. of Nestorians, he issued in 523 a severe edict
Jerusalem, by the emperor Anastasius, John, against Manicheans, condemning them, where-
deacon of the Anastasis, was forcibly thrust ever found, to banishment or death (Cod.
into his episcopal seat by Olympius, prefect Justin, leg. 12). Justin's edict had debarred
of Palestine, on his engaging to receive Severus other heretics from public offices, but had
of Antioch into communion and to anathema- excepted the Arian Goths because of his
tize the decrees of Chalcedon (Cyrill. Scythop. league with Theodoric, the Gothic king of
Vit. S. Sab. cc. 37, 56). Such an engagement Italy. Soon afterwards, however, he pro-
awoke the orthodox zeal of St. Sabas and the ceeded against the Arians also, ordering all
other fathers of the desert, who successfully their churches to be consecrated anew for the
used their influence with the new-made bishop use of the Catholics. Theodoric, who, though
to prevent the fulfilment of the compact, an Arian, had hitherto granted toleration to
which Olympius lacked sufficient firmness to Catholics in his own dominions, remonstrated
enforce. Anastasius, recalling Olympius, dis- with the emperor by letter, but without effect.
patched in his room a name-sake of his own, He therefore applied to the bp. of Rome,
who had offered to forfeit 300 pounds of gold whom he sent for to Ravenna, desiring him to
if he failed to induce John to fulfil his agree- go to Constantinople to use his influence with
ment, A.D. 517. The prefect Anastasius sur- the emperor, and threatening that, unless
prised the unsuspicious bishop and threw him toleration were conceded to Arians in the
into prison until he should fulfil his promise. East, he would himself withhold it from
This step delighted the populace, who re- Catholics in the West. John went (a.d. 525),
garded John as having obtained Elias's seat accompanied by five bishops and four sena-
by fraud. Zacharias, one of the leading men tors. The unprecedented event of a visit by
JOANNES II. JOANNES III. 565

a bishop of Rome to Constantinople caused a with reason that, if He Who suffered in the
great sensation there. He was received with flesh was not of the Trinity, neither was He
the utmost respect by acclaiming crowds and Who was born in the flesh. The emperor
by the emperor. Invited by the patriarch Justinian, supported by the patriarch Epi-
Epiphanius to celebrate Easter with him in phanius, having condemned the position of
the great church, he consented only if seated the "Sleepless Monks," they sent a deputation
on a throne above that of the patriarch. to Rome, urging the pope to support their
He officiated in Latin and according to the deduction from the supposed doctrine of his
Latin rite. None were excluded from his predecessor. The emperor, having embodied
communion except Timotheus, patriarch of his view of the true doctrine in an imperial
Alexandria (Theophan. Marcellin. Com.).
; edict, sent it with an embassy to Rome and a
Anastasius (Lib- Ponttf.) states that the letter requesting the pope to signify in writing
emperor, though now in the 8th year of his to himself and the patriarch his accepts.nce of
reign, bowing to the ground before the vicar the doctrine of the edict, which he lays down
of St. Peter, solicited and obtained the honour as indubitably true, and assumes to be, as a
of being crowned by him. There is con- matter of course, the doctrine of the Roman
currence of testimony that John obtained a see (Inter. Epp. Joann. II. Labbe). But the
cessation of Justin's measures against the edict was a distinct assertion of the correctness
Arians. Baronius and Binius, anxious to of the phrase contended for by the Scythian
clear a pope from tolerating heresy, insist that monks and so much objected to by Hormisdas.
John dissuaded the emperor from the conces- Its words are, " The sufferings, as well as
sions demanded. Against this supposition miracles, which Christ of His own accord
Pagi {Critic.) cites the following: "Justin, endured in the flesh are of one and the same.
having heard the legation, promised that he For we do not know God the Word as one and
"
would do all, except that those who had been Christ as another, but one and the same
reconciled to the Catholic faith could by no (Lex. Justin. Cod. i, i. 6). In his letter
means be restored to the Arians" [Anonym- Justinian expresses himself similarly.
Vales.);
" The venerable pope and senators John, having received both deputations,
returned with glory, having obtained all they assembled the Roman clergy, who at first could
asked from Justin " (Anastasius) " Justinus come to no agreement.
;
But afterwards a
Augustus granted the whole petition, and synod convened by the pope accepted and
restored to the heretics their churches, accord- confirmed Justinian's confession of faith. To
ing to the wish of Theodoric the heretical this effect he wrote to the emperor on Mar.
king, lest Christians, and especially priests, 23, 534 (Joann. II. Ep. ii. Labbe) and to
;

should be put to the sword " (Auctor. Chron. the Roman senators, laying down the true
Vetermn Pontificum) ;
" Having come to doctrine as the emperor had defined it, and
Augustus, they requested him with many warning them not to communicate with the
tears to accept favourably the tenour of their " Sleepless Monks."
embassy, however unjust and he, moved by
; It is true that we do not find in the letters
their tears, granted what they asked, and left of Hormisdas any distinct condemnation of
the Arians unmolested " {Miscell. lib. 15, the phrase itself, however strongly he in-
ad ann. vi. Justin). Whatever the cause, it is veighed against its upholders, as troublesome
certain that John and the legates were, on re- and dangerous innovators. But the fact
turning, received with displeasure by Theodoric remains that a doctrinal statement which one
and imprisoned at Ravenna, where the pope pope strongly discountenanced, as at any rate
died on May 18, 526. His body was buried in unnecessary and fraught with danger, was,
St. Peter's at Rome on May 27, on which day twelve years afterwards, at the instance of an
he appears in the Roman Martyrology as a emperor, authoritatively propounded by an-
saint and martyr. See also Fragm. Vales. Greg. other. Justinian's view, which John accepted,
Dial. i. iii. c. 2. [j.b —
v.] has ever since been received as orthodox.
Joannes (347) II. (called Mercurius), bp. In 534 John, being consulted by Caesarius of
of Rome after Boniface II., Dec. 31, 532, to Aries as to Contumeliosus, bp. of Riez in Gaul,
May 27, 535, a Roman by birth who had been wrote to Caesarius, to the bishops of Gaul, and
a Roman presbyter (Anastas. Lib. Pont.) to the clergy of Riez, directing the guilty bishop
The canvassings and contests then usual to be confined in a monastery.
delayed the election 11 weeks. Church funds A letter assigned to this pope by the
were used and sacred vessels publicly sold for Pseudo-Isidore, addressed to a bp. Valerius,
bribery (Ep. Athalaric. ad Joann. pap. Cassi- on the relation of the Son to the Father, is
odor. Variar. 1. ix.; Ep. 15).
;

spurious. [j.b —Y.]


The most noteworthy incident of his brief Joannes (348) III., bp. of Rome, after
reign is a doctrinal decision, in which he Pelagius, July 18, 560, to July 12, 573, or-
appears at first sight to differ from one of his dained after a vacancy of 4 months and 17
predecessors. Pope Hormisdas had in 522 days, was the son of a person of distinction at
written in strong condemnation of certain Rome (Anastas. Lib. Pont.). There are two
Scythian monks who had upheld the statement incidents in which his name appears. Two
that " One of the Trinity " Unus ex Trinitate) bishops in Gaul had been deposed by a synod
(
" suffered in the flesh." His rejection of the held by order of king Guntram at Lyons under
phrase had at the time been construed so as the metropolitan Nicetius. The deposed
to imply heresy (Ep. Maxent. ad Hormisd.), prelates obtained the king's leave to appeal to
and now ihe. Acoemetae, or " Sleepless Monks," Rome, and John III. ordered their restoration
of Constantinople argued from it in favour of (Greg. Turon. Hist. 1. v. cc. 20, 27). The
the Nestorian position that Mary was not second incident is mentioned by Anastasius
truly and properly the mother of God saying (Lib. Pont, in Vit. Joann. IIL), and by Paulus
;

666 JOANNES PRESBYTER JOANNES PRESBYTER


Diaconus (i. 5). The exarch Narses, having Alexandria, he plainly had in mind that
retired to Naples, there invited the Lombards passage of his writings which he gives at length
to invade Italy. The pope went to him, and elsewhere. The ambiguous way in which he
persuaded him to return to Rome. This inci- speaks of the Apocalypse shews that his
dent, discredited by Baronius (/1«m. 567, Nos. personal inclination was to pronounce it non-
8-12) is credited by Pagi and Muratori (cf. apostolical, but that he was kept in check by
Gibbon, c. xlv.). [j.b— v.] the weight of authority in its favour. The
Joannes (444) Presbyter, a shadowy per- silence of Eusebius indicates that the other
sonage of the sub-apostolic age, the reasons passages in Papias where John was mentioned
for belief in his existence being solely derived contained no decisive indications what John
from an inference drawn by Eusebius from was intended.
language used in a passage of Papias. In the Modern writers have not been unanimous in
middle of the 3rd cent. Dionysius of Alex- their judgment on this criticism of Eusebius.
andria (Eus. H. E. vii. 25) had maintained on Several reject it, judging Papias to be men-
critical grounds that the author of the fourth tioning one John twice. So Milligan (Journal
gospel and of the Catholic epistle could not Sac. Lit. Oct. 1867), Riggenbach (Jahrb. fUr
also have been the author of the Apocalypse. deutsche Theol. xiii. 319), Zahn {Stud, und
Dionysius takes for granted that the author Knt. 1866, p. 650, Acta Johannis, 1880, p.
of the gospel was John the apostle, and has cliv.). But a far more powerful array of
no difficulty in conceding that the name of the critics endorses the conclusion of Eusebius
author of the Apocalypse was also John, since e.g. Steitz {Sttid. und Krit. 1868, p. 63), Light-
the writer himself says so ;but urges that he foot (Contemp. Rev. Aug. 1875, p. 379), West-
never claims to be the apostle. He calls cott (A'^. T. Canon, p. 69) while less orthodo:!f
;

himself simply John, without adding that he critics with one consent base their theories
was the disciple whom Jesus loved, or who with confidence on John the Elder being as
leaned on our Lord's breast, or the brother of historical as SS. Peter or Paul.
James, or in any way forcing us to identify The argument of Eusebius, on the other
him with the son of Zebedee. Now, there were hand, seems to have made little impression at
many Johns, and it is said that there were the time and his successors seem to know only
two tombs in Ephesus, each called John's. of one John and go on speaking of Papias as
Except in the statement last made, Dionysius the hearer of John the apostle. In this they
does not pretend to have found any actual follow Irenaeus; and it is an important fact
trace of any John of the apostolic age besides that Irenaeus, who was very familiar with the
John the apostle and John Mark. His argu- work of Papias of which he made large use and
ment is merely that if we have good critical whose Eastern origin ought to have acquainted
reasons for believing the authors of the gospel him with the traditions of the Asiatic church,
and of the Apocalypse to be distinct, the fact shews no symptom of having heard of any
that both bore the name John does not force John but the apostle, and describes Papias
us to identify them. Some 75 years later (v. 33, p. 333) as a hearer of John and a com-
Eusebius found historic evidence for regarding panion of Polycarp. That Polycarp was a
as a fact what Dionysius had suggested as a hearer of John the apostle is stated explicitly
possibility. He produces from the preface by Irenaeus in his letter to Victor (Eus. H. E.
to the work of Papias an extract, for a fuller V. 24 see also his letter to Florinus, v. 20).
;

discussion of which see Papias. What con- That Polycarp was made bp. of Sm^Tna by
cerns us here is that Papias, speaking of his John the apostle is stated by Tertullian
care in collecting oral traditions of the apos- (Praes. v. 30) and was never doubted by sub-
tolic times, says, " On any occasion when a sequent writers. Polycrates, appealing to the
person came in my way, who had been a fol- great lights of the church of Asia (Eus. v. 24),
lower of the elders, I would inquire about the names John, who leaned on our Lord's breast,

discourses of the elders what was said by who sleeps at Ephesus, but says nothing about
Andrew, or by Peter, or by Philip, or by any second John buried there or elsewhere.
Thomas or James, or by John or Matthew or The silence of Dionysius of Alexandria is
any other of the Lord's disciples, and what positive proof that no tradition of a second
Aristion and the Elder John, the disciples of John had reached him. If he knew and re-
the Lord say " (Lightfoot's trans.). Eusebius membered the passage in Papias it did not
points out that as the name John occurs here occur to him to draw from it the same infer-
twice : the first time in a list of apostles, no ence as Eusebius. Neither, though he men-
doubt representing John the apostle ; the tions the two monuments at Ephesus, both
second time in a different list, after the name bearing the name of John, does he say what
of Aristion and with the title elder prefixed, would have been very much to his purpose,
it must represent a different person. Thus that he had heard that they were supposed to
the John whose traditions Papias several commemorate different persons ; and in fact
times records is the elder, not the apostle. Jerome, who in his " catalogue " repeats the
We find thus, remarks Eusebius, that " the story, tells us that some held that the same
account of those is true who have stated that John was commemorated by both.* The
two persons in Asia had the same name, and Acts of Leucius are notoriously the source
that there were two tombs in Ephesus, each whence the Fathers, from the 4th cent., derived
of which, even to the present time, bears the J ohannine traditions. While disagreeing with
name of John." " It is likely that the second
• Zahn (Acta Johinnis, p. cliv. sqq.) tries to prove
(unless we allow that it was, as some would
that one memorial church was erected outside the
have it, the first) beheld the revelation as- walls where John was buried the other inside on
;

cribed to John" {H. E. iii. 39). Although the site of the house where he resided and had
Eusebius does not here name Dionysius of celebrated his last communion.
;

JOANNES PRESBYTER JOANNES PRESBYTER 567

Zahn's opinion that Leucius was earlier than Elder " the two minor epistles, and this is a
Papias, it is highly probable that he was a very natural inference from their inscription.
full century earlier than Eusebius, and we can That is a modest one, if the writer could have
assert, with as much confidence as such a claimed the dignity of apostle but if not, it
;

thing can be asserted of a book of which only seems arrogant to designate himself as the
fragments remain, that Leucius mentioned no elder when there must have been elders in
John but the apostle. If when Leucius put every city. There is also a great assumption
his stories together any tradition had remained of authority in the tone of the 3rd epistle.
of a second John, this would surely have been The writer sends his legates to the churches
among the Leucian names of the apostle's of the district, is angry if these legates are
disciples, so many of which we are able to not respectfully received, and addresses the
enumerate. Eusebius had not thought of his churches in a tone of command. It may be
theory at the time of his earlier work, the suggested as an explanation of this, that the
Chronicle, in which he describes Papias as a writer knew himself to be the sole survivor in
disciple of the evangelist. Jerome also is not the district of the first Christian generation
self-consistent, speaking in one way when and it agrees with this that Papias describes
immediately under the influence of Eusebius, him as a disciple of our Lord, yet speaks of him
at other times following the older tradition. in the present tense while he speaks of the
In the East the only trace of the theory of apostles in the past. But this hypothesis
Eusebius is that the Apostolic Constitutions is scarcely tenable if we believe what is told
(vii. 46) make John ordain another John, as of the great age attained by the apostle John,
bp. of Ephesus in succession to Timothy. The who is said to have lived to the reign of Trajan.
writers who used the work of Papias do not This hardly leaves room for any one who
seem to suspect that any John but the apostle could claim to have heard our Lord to acquire
was the source of his information. One frag- celebrity after the apostle's decease. Further,
ment (Gebhardt and Harnack, 2nd ed. No. iii. no one who used the fourth gospel only could
p. 93) was preserved by Apollinarius, who de- know that there had been an apostle named
scribes Papias as a disciple of John; some John. Even our Lord's forerunner, called in
authorities add " the apostle," but wherever other gospels John the Baptist, in this is
John is mentioned without addition no other simply John, as if there were no need to dis-
is meant. Anastasius of Sinai (Gebhardt, tinguish him from any other. The apostle
No. vi.) describes Papias as 6 ^v t(^ eiriaTrjditxi alone would not feel such need, therefore if
(pOiT-qaas and No. vii. as 6 'Iwdi'vou tov euayye- he were the author of the gospel, all is intel-
Xiarov <p0LT7)TT)s ;Maximus confessor (No. ligible but if the author were his disciple,
;

ix.) describes him as cfwaKixaaavra t<^ dei(p is itconceivable that he should thus suppress
E^ayyi\i(TT^ 'Iwdcj/j;. An anonymous but the name of his great master and predecessor
ancient note even makes Papias the scribe in labour in Asia and if beside the apostle
;

who wrote the gospel from the apostle's there were in our Lord's circle another John,
is it conceivable that the writer should not
dictation. Thus Eusebius stands completely
alone among ancient authorities, differing have distinguished between them ?
alike from his predecessors and successors. Thus the Eusebian interpretation of Papias
It by no means necessarily follows that he must stand on its own merits. It obtains no
was wrong. If he has correctly interpreted confirmation from independent testimony, nor
the language of Papias, the authority of so does it solve any perplexing problems. It is
ancient a witness outweighs that of any num- certainly possible that we with our more
ber of later writers. We can conceive either powerful instruments of criticism may be able
that there were two Johns in Asia, and that to resolve a double star which had appeared
the latter's fame was so absorbed by the glory to the early observers single. Yet con-
of his greater namesake that all remembrance sidering how much closer and more favourably
of him was lost ; or else we may imagine that circumstanced they were, we have need to
the second John, the source of apostolic tradi- look well that the mistake is not our own.
tions to the Asiatic churches, was held in suchOne Eusebian argument must then be re-
high consideration that, though not really so, namely, that by calling his second
jected,
he passed in common fame as the apostle. John the elder, Papias meant to distinguish
The supposition that John the apostle was him from the apostle. This would be so if
never in Asia Minor has been embraced by he had called the first John an apostle, but
Keim (J esu von Nazara), Scholten (Der Apostel actually he calls him an elder. If we suppose,
Johannes in Kleinasien) and others. But as do Lightfoot and others, that he uses the
least
except that the recognition of the residence word elder in two different senses, at
of a different John in Asia opens the possi- the word cannot be used the
second tinie to
bility of a confusion, their reasons for disbelief distinguish him from those to whom it is

in the apostle's residence in Asia are worthless. applied the first time. distinguish
If it is to
There is an immense mass of patristic testi- him from any one it is from Aristion, to whom,
mony that J ohn the apostle lived to a great age though also called a disciple of the Lord, this
and died in Asia in the reign of Trajan. name is not applied. Hence Eusebius's second
then, both J ohn the apostle and the elder
If, argument, that Papias by placing John after
taught in Asia, can we transfer to the second Aristion meant to assign to him a less honour-
anything traditionally told of the first ? able place, fails since John is given a title of
Dionysius and Eusebius transfer to him the dignity which is refused to Aristion. Some
authorship of the Apocalypse, but those who light is thrown on the sense in which the word
now divide the Johannine books between elder is applied to John by Papias in his
these two Johns unanimously give the Apoca- preface by the fact that one of his traditions
" These things the
lypse to the first. St. Jerome assigns to " the is told with the formula,
568 JOANNES JOANNES
elder used to say." This must surely mean MSB. exist in the Roman libraries. Though
more than that the authority cited was one of abounding in digressions, the style is marked
the many presbyters of the church and we by persuasive eloquence. They are headed :

cannot help connecting with it the fact re- " On the divine gifts and spiritual solaces
vealed by the minor Johannine epistles, that vouchsafed to monks for their comfort and
there was some one in the Asiatic church who delight." Assem. Bib. Or. 1. 433-444, iii. i.
spoke of himself, and no doubt was habitually 103, 4 ;Bickell, Consp. Syr. p. 26. [c.j.b.]
spoken of by others, as " the Elder." Joannes (509), called of BHh-Rabbdn or
The only Eusebian argument then that Bethnarsi, disciple and successor in the 6th
remains is that Papias mentions the name cent, of Jacobus the founder of the monastery
John twice over and therefore may be pre- of Beth-Haba. Jesujab, bp. of Nineveh,
sumed to speak of two Johns. But might he stated that Joannes had been a monk 70 years
not first enumerate John in his list of seven before his departure from Beth-Haba ; 30
apostles, concerning whom he had been able years he had lived as a solitary, 40 with
to glean traditions, and a second time in his Jacobus as a coenobite. Joannes was for
shorter list of men of the first Christian genera- some time in the monastery of Beth-Rabban,
tion who had survived to his own day ? Papias which was subject to the same abbat as Beth-
wrote for the men of his time, to whom Haba. Ebedjesu {ap. Assem. Bibl. Or. iii.
the facts were well known, and the idea of i. 72) states that he wrote a commentary on

being misunderstood would no more occur to Ex., Lev., Num., Job, Jer., Ezk., and Prov.,
him than it would to us, if we spoke of one also certain tracts against Magi, Jews, and
of our leading statesmen at one moment by heretics. He also wrote prayers for Rogation
his surname only, the next with the addition days, a prayer on the death of Chosroes K ,

of his title or Christian name. The second (d. 579), and on a plague which befel Nisibis,
time the title " elder " is used it does not mean besides paracletic addresses for each order in
" one of the first generation of Christians," the church (i.e. metrical discourses read in the
for Aristion to whom the title is refused was office of the dead), a book of questions relating
that ; it does not mean merely one holding to O. and N. T., psalms, hymns, and chants.
the office of presbyter, for then the phrase One of his hymns is in the Mosul Breviary,
" the elder" would have no meaning. What p. 61, and in a MS. in the Brit. Mus. (Wright,
remains but that the second John had the Cat. p. 13,";). Rosen and Forshall {Cat. MSS.
same right to the title as Andrew, Peter, and xii. 3 n.) mention another hymn of his. Cf.
the rest to whom it is given in the beginning also Lelong, Bibl. Sacr. ii. 794. [c.j.b.]
of the sentence ? Joannes (520), surnamed Moschus and
Hence while we own the Eusebian interpre- Eucratas (also Everatas and Eviratus, cor-
tation of Papias to be a possible one, we are ruptions of Eucratas as Fabricius remarks), a
unable to see that it is the only possible one ;
monk, author of Pratuni Spirituale, c. 620.
and therefore while willing to receive the The materials of his Life are to be collected
hypothesis of two Johns, if it will help to from his book (which exhibits no historical
explain any difficulty, we do not think the arrangement), a brief notice by Photius (Cod.
evidence strong enough to establish it as an 199) and a Greek Vatican MS. of which Migne
historical fact ; and we frankly own that has printed a Latin version entitled Elogium
if it were not for deference to better judges, Auctoris. This document extends the chrono-
we should unite with Keim in relegating, logical material, and purports to have been
though in a different way, this " Doppel- composed while the laura of St. Sabas in
ganger " of the apostle to the region of Palestine was standing.
ghostland. [g.s.] Photius states that Moschus commenced the
Joannes (504), surnamed Climacus, Scho- recluse life in the monastery of St. Thcodosius,
laslicus, or Sinaita. At the age of i6 he perhaps c. 575. In the Pratum Moschus is
entered the monastery of Mount Sinai, sub- found at two monasteries named after two
sequently became an anchoret, and at 75 Theodosii, near Antioch and Jerusalem re-
abbat of Mount Sinai. At the entreaty of spectively. The one intended by Photius is a
John abbat of Raithu he now composed his laura founded c. 451 by the younger St. Theo-
works, the Scala Paradisi and the Liber ad dosius a little E. of Jerusalem (Boll. Acta SS.
Pastorem ;from the title {KKifj,a^) of the first Jan. i. 683). The Prattun (c. 92) shews Moschus
of these he gained his name of Climacus at this spot, described as " in the desert of the
(Climakos). It contains his experiences in holy city, "Gregory being archimandrite. In the
the spiritual life, with instructions for the reign of Tiberius (Prat. 112) John Moschus was
attainment of a higher degree of holiness, and sent by his superior on monastic business with
is dedicated to the abbat of Raithu who after- a companion, Sophronius Sophista (said to
wards wrote a commentary upon it {Pair. have been afterwards patriarch of Jerusalem),
Gft. Ixxxviii. 1211-1248). Returning into soli- to Egypt and Oasis. This circumstance, un-
tude, John died at an advanced age early in noticed by Photius, is assigned by the Elogium
the 7th cent. Boll. Acta SS. Mart. iii. 834 : to the beginning of the reign of Tiberius (i.e.
Migne, u.s. 631-1210 a new ed. of the Gk. text
; 578). The absence was perhaps temporary,
works was pub. in 1883 at Constantinople
of his and Moschus's more protracted wanderings in
by Sophronius Eremites; Surius, de Probatis Egypt may be assigned to a much later day.
Sanct. Historiis, Mar. 30. [i.g.s.] His Palestine life lasted more than 25 years,
Joannes (507) Saba, a native of Nineveh, and Sophronius Sophista is frequently men-
fl.in 6th cent. ;an orthodox monk of Dilaita tioned as his companion, once with a remark
or Daliatha, a small town on the W. bank of that it was " before he renounced the world."
the Euphrates. His works are 30 discourses Photius states that he began monastic life at
and 48 epistles, of which Syriac and Arabic St. Thcodosius, he afterwards resided with
JOANNES JOANNES 569

the monks of the Jordan desert and in the assists the chronology for as the Persians
;

new laura of St. Sabas. The Pratum fills up obtained possession of Jerusalem in 615 and
this outline. The laura of Pharon [^apwv, in 616 advanced from Palestine and took
^apdv, <I>apa, Pharan in the Latin version) Alexandria (Rawl. 503, 504), the rumour of
was his residence for ten years (40). It was their approach would cause the retirement of
within burying distance of Jerusalem (42), Moschus in one of those years. The Pratum
and near the laura of Calamon and that of (185) records a visit to Samos. The Elogium
the Towers of Jordan (40). The laura of relates how on his deathbed at Rome he
Calamon where Moschus visited was near delivered his book to Sophronius, requesting
Jordan (157, 163). Another ten years (67) he to be buried if possible at Mount Sinai or at
resided at the laura of Aeliotae. This also the laura of St. Theodosius. Sophronius and
was near Jordan (134) and still under the rule 12 fellow-disciples sailed with the body to
of its founder Antonius (66). Moschus was at Palestine, but, hearing at Ascalon that Sinai
Jerusalem at the consecration of the patriarch was beset by Arabs, took it up to Jerusalem
Amos (149), probably therefore a.d. 594 (Le beginning of the eighth indiction, i.e.
(in the
Quien, Or. Chr. iii. 246) he records having
;
Sept. I, 620) and buried it in the cemetery
c.

ascended from "holy Gethsemane " to the of St. Theodosius.


"holy mount of Olives" (187). He resided The work of Moschus consists of anecdotes
at the laura of St. Sabas, called New Laura and sayings collected in the various monas-
teries he visited, usually of eminent anchorets
(3,128) near the Dead Sea (53), and a few miles
E. of St. Theodosius (Boll. u.s.). He visited of his own time, as he states in his dedicatory
" address to Sophronius but some whose
the IX0V7) of the eunuchs near " holy Jordan ;

stories were related belonged to an earlier


(135-137), the xenodochium of the fathers at
Ascalon (189), and Scythopolis (50). That he period, e.g. John of Sapsas. The work is now
distributed in 219 chapters, but was originally
held the office of a Kavbvapxos is a mistake of
comprised, says Photius, in 304 narrations
Fabricius, citing Prat. 50, where it is a nar-
rator, not Moschus, who thus describes him- {SL7)y7iij.aTa). The discrepancy
may be partly
self. From the wilderness of Jordan and due to arrangement, as some chaps, {e.g. 5, 55,
the New Laura, says Photius, John went to 92, 95, 105) contain 2 or even 3 distinct narra-
Antioch and its neighbourhood, the Elogium introduced by the very word dirjyqixa.
tions,
adding that this occurred when the Persians Moschus {To Sophron.) compares the character
attacked the Romans because of the murder of his worthies to various flowers in a spring
(Nov. 27, 602) of the emperor Maurice and meadow, and names his work accordingly
his children. In 603 Chosroes declared war Aei/xdbv {Pratum). In the time of Photius
against Phocas. The Pratum shews Moschus some called it ^iov napadeictov {Hortulus
at Antioch or Theopolis (88, 89) and at Novus), and it has since been named Viri-
Seleucia while Theodorus was bp. (79) ; darium, N^os Wapdbuffos {Novus Paradisus) and
but as this bp. is not otherwise known AfifiuvdpLov. The title Pratum Spirittiale ap-
we get no date (Le Quien, Or. Chr. ii. 780). parently originated with the first Latin trans-
He visited the fiovaar-qpiov (also ixovri) of the lator, said by Possevinus to have been Am-
elder St. Theodosius, on the Rhosicus Scopu- brosius Camaldulensis (06. 1439), who trans-
lus, a mountain promontory between Rhosus lated numerous works of the Greek Fathers
in the gulf of Issus and Seleucia (80-86, 95, (Oudin. iii. 2437). The Pratum in this version
99). At a village six miles from Rhosus, in forms lib. x. of Rosweyd's Vitae Patrum
the seventh indiction {i.e. between Sept. i, (1615), which Migne reprinted in 1850 {Pat.
604, and Aug. 31, 605), he heard the story of Lat. Ixxiv.), prefixing to the Pratum the Elo-
Joannes Humilis. From those parts, says gium Auctoris already described. In 1624 an
Photius, he went to Alexandria and Oasis and incomplete Greek text made its appearance,
the neighbouring deserts. This was his prin- accompanying the Latin, furnished by Fronto
cipal visit to Egypt, the only one noticed by Ducaeus in vol. ii. of the Auctarium to the
Photius and the most prominent one in the 4th ed. of La Bigne's Magna Bibliotheca Pa-
Elogium, which states his reason for leaving trum. In La Bigne's ed. of 1654 it stands in
Syria to have been the invasion of the empire voL xiii. p. 1057. In 1681 Cotelier {Eccles.
by the Persians, i.e. when Chosroes overran Gr. Mon. ii. 341) supplied more of the Greek
N. Syria in and after 605 (as detailed by and gave an independent Latin translation of
Rawlinson, Seventh Monarchy, 501, 502). At some parts. In i860 Migne {Pat. Gk. Ixxxvii.
Alexandria Moschus remained eight years (as 2814) reprinted the thus augmented Greek,
the Latin version renders xp6coi's oktu), Prat. leaving a gap of only three chaps. (121, 122,
13 fin.) in the fJ-ovaar-qpLov of Palladius (69-73). 132), retaining the Latin of Ambrosius through-
The names of monastic localities in and about out. Other bibliographical particulars, in-
Alexandria occur in Prat. 60, 105, no, in, cluding an account of the Italian and French
145, 146, 162, 177, 184, 195. There are re- versions, will be found in Fabricius {Bibl. Gr.
corded also visits to the Thebaid cities of x. 124, ed. Harles). The authorship of the
Antinous and Lycus (44, 143, 161), to the Pratum used sometimes to be attributed to
laura of Raythu (115, 116, 119) on the Red Sophronius, in whose name it is cited by John
Sea shore (120, 121), and to Mount Sinai (122, of Damascus {de Imagin. orat. i. 328, ii. 344,
123). Photius states that from Egypt Mos- iii. 352 in Patr. Gk. xciv. 1279, 1315, i335) and

chus went to Rome, touching at some islands likewise in actio iv. of the seventh synod in
en route, and at Rome composed his book. 787 (Mansi, xiii. 59). John Moschus and his
What drove him from Egypt appears in the book are treated by Cave (i. 581) and more
Elogium. The holy places had fallen into the fully byCeillier (xi. 700). Dupin gives an
hands of the enemy and the subjects of analysis of the Pratum for illustrations of
the empire were terror-stricken. This again church discipline (Eng. trans. 1722, t. ii-p-ii).
|
570 JOANNES PHILOPONUS JORDANIS
Cf. S. Vailhe, St. Jean Mosch. in Echos when, John, patriarch of Constantinople,
d'orient, igoi. [c.h.] having delivered a catechetical discourse on
Joannes (564) Philoponus, a " grammati- the '' Holy and consubstantial Trinity," he
cus " of Alexandria a distinguished philo-
; published a treatise in reply to it. Photius is
sopher, a voluminous writer (Suidas, s.v. unsparing in his criticism of this work, charg-
'luidwrji T/).). and one of the leaders of the ing the author with having perverted the
Tritheites of the 6th cent. (Sophron. Ep. authorities whom he quotes {Bibl. Ixxv.).
Synodic. Co. Const, a.d. 68o act. xi. in
; Philoponus must now have been very old,
Mansi, xi. 501 ; Leont. Byzant. de Sect. act. but apparently lived some vears longer.
V. in Migne, Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi. i. 1232). From During his hfetime the tritheites appear
his great industry he acquired the surname of to have been united under his leadership (Tim.
Philoponus. He was a native of Alexan- Presb. Recept. Haer. in Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi. i. 62),
dria. His earliest known appearance as an but after his decease they became divided
author was in his irepi aidioTijTos, a reply to because of the opinions he had maintained on
Proclus Diadochus. It shows great dialectic the resurrection-body, both in his writings
ability and learning, the quotations in it against the heathen and in a special work on
covering the whole range of the literature of this subject. This last was in several books,
his own and previous times (Fabricius, Bibl. of which Photius speaks in no respectful terms
Gr. ed. Harles, x. 652-654), and is said by {Bibl. xxi. xxiii.), though it found great favour
Suidas to have been a complete refutation of with that section of the Monophysites which
the great neo-Platonist and to have con- persevered in their adherence to Philoponus
victed him of gross ignorance (s. v. WpbKKo^). and with Eutychius the Catholic patriarch Qf
Apparently about the same time Philoponus Constantinople. [Eutychius (18).] Those"
was engaged in a controversy with Severus, Tritheites who still followed him were dis-
the deposed bp. of Antioch (Suidas, s.v. 'Iwaf tinguished as Philoponiaci, or Athanasiani
;

Galland. Bibl. Vet. Patr. xii. 376 Cureton,


;
because of Athanasius's prominence amongst
Fragments, 212, 245 seq.). To the same period them (Schonfelder, Die Tritheiten, app. to his
may be assigned a treatise de Universali et German trans, of John of Ephesus, 269, 274,
Particulari, described by Assemani in his cata- 297), while their opponents were called
logue of Syriac MSS. {Bibl. Or. i. 613). Cononitae, after Conon of Tarsus who wrote
At the request of Sergius (ordained patriarch a reply to the XTept avaffTdaojis.
of Antioch by the Monophysites c. 540) Philo- Philoponus wrote numerous other works,
ponus wrote his A»atT>;T»?s, Arbiter, the Umpire. many of them non-theological. His work de
It is an attempt to shew that the doctrine Aeternitate Mundi has been ed. by Rabe
which he and his followers held upon the (Leipz. 1899) ; his de Opificis Mundi by
subject of the union of the two natures in the Reichardt (Leipz. 1897), and a Libellus de Pas-
person of our Lord was dialectically necessary. c/m/e by Walter (Jena, 1899). [t.w.d.]
The argument is admirably condensed by Joannes (565) Scythopolita, a schoiasticus
Prof. Dorner in his History of the Development of Scythopolis in Palestine. Photius had read
of the Doctrine of the Person of Christ (Clark's a work of his in 12 books. Against Separatists
trans, ii. 1. 416). from the Church or Against Eutvches and Dios-
At what period Philoponus distinctly corns, written at the request "of a patriarch
avowed what is known as Tritheism (Eulog. Juhanus, probably Julian patriarch of An-
Patr. Alex. Oral. Phot, ccxxx. ed. Schott. p. tioch, A.D.471-476 (Phot. Cod. 95, in Patr. Gk.
879) does not clearly appear, but it must have 339 n). John of Scythopolis was also the
ciii.

been before the middle of the 6th cent, as Mar author of irapadiffeis or commentaries on the
Abas, " Prinias Orientis " (d. 552) was one of Pseudo-Dionysius, which had a wide circu-
his converts to that doctrine (Assem. Bibl. Or. lation for some centuries. Among the Syriac
ii. 411). Notwithstanding this, if not because MSS. in the Brit. Mus. there is a Syriac trans,
of it, the emperor Justinian sent one of his of Dionysius, with an introduction and notes
officers named Stephanus to Alexandria to by Phocas bar-Sergius of Edessa, a writer of
summon Philoponus to Constantinople " in the 8th cent. The notes are largely a trans-
causa fidei," but he wrote excusing himself lation of the wapadiffus (Wright, Cat. Syr.
because of age and infirmity. In his letter he MSS. pt. ii. p. 493). Cf. Loots, Leontius von
urged Justinian to issue an edict prohibiting Byzans. (1S87). [t.w.d.]
the discussion of the " two natures." JordaniS {Jomandes, the Gothic name, on
On the death of Joannes Ascusnaghcs, the his becoming an ecclesiastic was changed to
founder of the Tritheites, his Demonstrationes Jordanis, Wattenbach, p. 62), historian of the
were sent to Philoponus at Alexandria. The Goths (and probably bp. of Crotona, in Bru-
latter then wrote a treatise on the subject and tium) in the middle of 6th cent.
sent it to his friend at Constantinople. The I. Authorities.
Monophysites, finding that this publication iii. 171, etc.

Grimm, Kleinere Schriften,
Ebert, Gcschichte der Christlich
;

brought them into great disrepute, appealed to Lat. Lit. (Dahn, 1875) Die Konigc der Ger- ;

theemperorjustinll., who had married Sophia, manen, ii. 243-260, for Jordanis's use of words
a granddaughter of the empress Theodora, and of constitutional importance Anekdoton Hol- ;

was known to be favourable to their party. (im (Hermann Usener, Bonn, 1877); and for
He complied with their request, and the other authorities, Wattenbach, p. 55.
matter was committed to Joannes Scholas- II. Writings. —
His only works of which we
ticus, who had succeeded Eutychius on his have certain knowledge are the de Brevia-
refusal to subscribe the Julianist edict of Jus- tione Chronicorum (more commonly but wrong-
tinian, A.D. 56s (Creg. Bar-hebr. ; Asseman. ly called de Regnorum Successione) and the de
Bibl. Or. ii. 328). Getarum Origine et Rebus Gestis.
We hear no more of Philoponus until 568, (i) The de Breviatione Chronicorum (Mura-
JORDANIS JORDANIS 571

tori, Scriptores Rerum Ital. i. 222-242) is a adding extracts of his own from Latin and
compendium of the history of the world, of Greek writers, and that the beginning, middle,
little and only important as indicating
value, and end of the work were his own composition.
the strong feeling of the Goth Jordanis that It might certainly have been supposed that
the power of the Roman empire was to last the preface at least was the composition of
to the end of time. Jordanis himself. But the most convincing
{2) The de Getarum Origine et Rebus Gestis evidence of the writer's want of originality
is one of the most important works written has been shewn by the discovery made fjy Von
during the period of the Teutonic settlements Sybel with reference to this preface (Schmidt,
in Western Europe. In amount of matter it Zeitschriftfiir Geschichie, vii. 288). It is largely
may equal about 20 pages of this Diet. Its a literal copy of the introduction by Rufinus
contents are most conveniently arranged to his trans, of Origen's Comm. on Romans.
under four heads (cf. Ebert. p. 532). If the general view of the History of the Goths
1 (c. i. 13). The work opens with a geo- by Jordanis, first propounded by Schirren, and
graphical account of the world and in par- afterwards worked out by Kopke, Bessel, and
ticular of N. Europe and the island " Scandza." others, be true, the place of Jordanis as a
Jordanis then identifies the Goths with the historian is but low. He does not acknow-
Scythians, whose country he describes, and ledge several authorities whom he largely
praises their learning and bravery. He then uses and displays an array of authorities
recounts their wars with the Egyptians whom he only knows at second-hand. But
and Amazons, and, identifying the Goths with it must be remembered that Jordanis does not

the Getae, describes the deeds of Telephus claim originality, except under the clause in
and Tomyris. Cyrus, Xerxes, Alexander the the preface {" initium finemque et plura in
Great, Caesar and Tiberius are mentioned. medio mea dictione permiscens "). The sub-
With chap. 18 he suddenly passes to the de- stratum of the whole work must still be
vastation of the banks of the Danube by the ascribed to Cassiodorius. Is it, then, possible
Goths and their victory over the Romans. to disentangle the work of Cassiodorius from
He then pauses to give fuller details about the setting in which Jordanis has placed it ?
the royal Gothic race of the Amali. A complete separation can, from the circum-
2 (c. 14-23). He carries the genealogy of stances of the case, hardly be possible. Yet
the Amali down to Mathasuentha, the grand- we may be tolerably sure that, though many
daughter of Theodoric and widow of Vitigis, of the extracts bear the traces of the treat-
who had just married, as he tells us, Germanus ment and colouring of Jordanis, enough re-
brother of Justinian. He then returns to the mains of the lost work to bring us in to close
Goths and their movement into Moesia and contact with the mind and words of Cassio-
Thracia. Claiming for the emperor Maximus dorius, and, to a certain extent, to enable us
a Gothic father, he thus raises the Goths to to understand his purpose in his great work.
high honour. The deeds of Ostrogotha are The history of the Goths was certainly
then related, the victory over the Gepidae, the completed before the death of Athalaric in 534
expeditions to Asia Minor, and Geberich's [Variae, ix. 25) ;Kopke and others suppose
conquest of the Vandals. After Geberich c- 533- Since the discovery of the Anek-
came Hermanaric conqueror of the Heneti and doton Holderi, however, it has become practi-
many other tribes. cally certain that the Gothic History of Cas-
3 (c. 24-47). This division begins with an siodorius was composed some years before
account of the Huns, their victory over the 533 ;
probably not later than 521.
Goths, and the death of Hermanaric. He In two passages of his Variae Cassiodorius
traces the separation of the Visigoths from the refers to his Gothic History. By far the more
Ostrogoths, and follows their history. He important passage, of which nearly every
shortly recounts Alaric's invasion of Italy, word helps to shew his purpose, is in ix. 25,
and introduces the story of Attila's invasion where Cassiodorius describes his History in a
of Gaul and defeat. The battle of Chalons is letter addressed nominally by king Athalaric
described at considerable length. At the close to the senate in 534.
of the section he describes the subjugation Cassiodorius clearly shews that his primary
of Italy by Odoacer and the deposition of object was not literary, but political. He saw
Augustulus. the growing antagonism between Goths and
4 (c. 48-60). Jordanis now returns to the Romans and Theodoric's efforts to lessen it.
Ostrogoths, once more mentions the defeat He saw the king trying to combine the old
of Hermanaric, and this leads him to speak of and the new elements and to form a kingdom
the death of Attila. He describes the move- in which both could live with mutual respect.
ment of the Ostrogoths into Pannonia, the He determined to assist by his writing his
reign of Theodemir and the birth of Theodoric. master's plans. He would try to draw the
The dealings of Theodoric with Zeno, his en- Goths and Romans together by shewing that
trance into Italy and his victory over Odoacer both nations were alike honourable for the
are recounted. The outline of the fortunes antiquity of their race and the glory of their
of the Goths in Italy is related very briefly, and history. He would tell the Goths of the
the work closes with the captivity of Vitigis, greatness of the Roman empire, with whom
and another mention of the marriage of they fought in ancient days, and would shew
Mathasuentha with Germanus. the Romans that the kingly family of the
His own words in the dedication of the de Amali was as noble as any Roman house. No
Getarum Origine or History of the Goths, one was better fitted than he to write a history
convey an impression that he had written an of the Goths. His real knowledge of ancient
abstract from memory of a three days' reading writers, his constant opportunities of con-
of the History of the Goths by Cassiodorius, verse with the king and Gothic nobles, his
572 JORDANIS JORDANIS
father's shareand his own in all the later or Teutonic race, was able to witness the return
contemporary events, provided him with of imperial power of old Rome and to have
ample material. In the earlier part of the friendly intercourse with the new Teutonic
work we can clearly see from Jordanis how emperor. To Jordanis the first Teutonic
the political theory of Cassiodorius was historian of a Teutonic race such a possibility
worked out. He adopted the belief that the was unknown, and he could only fix fruitless
Getae and the Goths were the same nation. hopes on a union of the Greek and the Goth
Further, he accepted the identity of the Goths to solve his difficulties. For the spirit of the
with the Scythians, a theory stated by several age and times which we thus seem to gather
Greek writers. Thus the Goths were brought from Jordanis's work we owe him a debt of
into contact or conflict with the great nations gratitude, and also for his preservation, if only
of antiquity and even the Amazons appear as in a broken form, of fragments from the
Gothic women. Yet even with all the notices greatest work of Theodoric's great secretary.
he could collect from Greek or Roman authori- The most important editions of the History
ties and the stories and sagas he heard at the of the Goths are : Muratori, Scriptores Rev.
court of Ravenna, his stock of accurate infor- Hal. i. 187-241 (Medial. 1723). Migne, Pair.
mation about the early history of the Goths Cursus, Ixix. Appendix to works of Cassio-
cannot have been large. The very theory dorius. Jordanis, de Getarmn Origine et
with which he wrote shews that much must Rebus Gestis, ed. C. A. Closs (Stuttg. 1861).
be accepted with reserve. In the Monumenta Germaniae the two works
Thirty years later the Gothic bishop, in his of Jordanis are undertaken by Mommsen
adaptation of the work, shewed that he rested himself. Neues Archiv. D. G. F. dltere De%t-
""^
his hopes of the future quite as much on the schen Geschichtskunde, ii. 5.
Roman empire as on the Gothic race itself. III. Life. — Jordanis tells us that his grand-
However little individuality as a historian father was notary to Candac, chief of the
Jordanis may have had, it lay with him to .Alani in Moesia, that he himself was a notary
choose and adapt his extracts from Cassio- before becoming an ecclesiastic, that he was
dorius in accordance with his own feelings, and of the Gothic race and apparently connected
there is enough of himself in the work to with the royal family of the Amali. We know
enable us to catch something of his spirit. from his own writings no more, and nothing
For him the end of the great struggle between further can be absolutely certain. But a
Goths and Romans had come ; the war discover}', first made by Cassel, has led to an
between Totila and Belisarius, or Narses, extremely important and very highly probable
which was yet going on, had no supreme conjecture about his identity. The name of
interest. The race of the Amali, with which one Jordanes Crotonensis, bp. of Crotona (now
he was connected and on which all his hopes Cotrone) in Bruttium is found, with those of
were centred, had ceased to rule the Goths. several other bishops, appended to a document
His desires for the future rested rather on the sometimes called the Damnatio Theodori,
union of the brother of the emperor with the issued by pope Vigilius in Aug. 551 at Con-
granddaughter of Theodoric than on the issue stantinople. If this should be our Jordanis,
of a struggle which he probably and rightly it becomes exceedingly probable that the
thought hopeless. His Catholic sympathies, Vigilius to whom the Chronicle of Jordanis
rejecting the idea of an Arian ruler, and his is dedicated and sent, along with the History
family pride, alike contributed to this result. of the Goths, is pope Vigilius. Vigilius was
Three times he alludes to the marriage of pope from 537 to 555. He had been made
Mathasuentha, widow of Vitigis (with whom pope by the influence of Belisarius at Rome,
she had been brought captive to Constanti- at the request of the empress Theodora. After
nople), to Germanus, brother of the emperor the issue of the Three Chapters by Justinian,
Justinian (cc. 14, 48, 60). In c. 60 he tells which Vigilius apparently dared not sign when
how Germanus died, leaving an infant son in Italy, the pope was summoned to Constan-
:

" Item Germanus : in quo conjuncta Anici- tinople, which he reached on Christmas Day,
orum gens cum Amala stirpe spem adhuc utri- 547. He was retained at Constantinople, or
usque generis Domino praestante promittit." in the neighbourhood, for seven years, till he
Jordanis was the iirst since Tacitus to at last obtained permission from Justinian to
treat the history of the Teutonic nations from return to Italy. At Constantinople he was
their side. The eternity of the Roman empire much persecuted by the emperor and his party,
had impressed itself on the mind of Jordanis. who tried to force him to sign a confession of
The idea, therefore, that the Goths were faith in accordance with their views. He was
equally learned and ancient must have been bold enough to excommunicate the bp. of
a support to him (and others like him) Caesarea, and then, fearing the emperor's
when Theodoric was ruling almost as a wrath, took sanctuary in the basilica of St.
miniature emperor in Italy. But the Peter in Constantinople. While in this church
thought of a union between the imperial with his companions, and, among others,
family and the Amali could alone satisfactorily several Italian bishops, he issued (Aug. 551)
reconcile his hopes for the great family to the document in which the name of Jordanes,
which he belonged and his belief in the church bp. of Cotrona, is found.
and empire of Rome. This traditional belief Several considerations make it exceedingly
in the empire and church was destined never probable that Jordanis wrote his work at
to be altogether broken in Italy. After two Constantinople. His almost complete ignor-
centuries of struggles between rival principles ance of the later and contemporary events in
in church and state the next Italian ecclesias- Italy is thus explained, and his detailed ac-
tic who attained importance as a historian, quaintance, shewn in several passages, with
Paulus Diaconus, himself, like Jordanis, of the aftairs of the empire accounted for.
JOSEPHUS JOVIANUS PLAVIUS 673

The bp. of Cotrona lived not far from the astrously defeated (Neum. 51). A fortress
monastery in Bruttium (monasterium Vivari- where the priests had taken refuge fell.
ense) to which Cassiodorius had retired after Joseph and Leontius, when about to be put
his active life as a statesman. Here Jordanis to death, asked to be sent to the king, hoping
first saw the 12 books of the Gothic history, to make terms for their people. They were
and was allowed by the steward of Cassio- sent, but would not waver in their steadfast-
dorius a second perusal of the work. When he ness (ib. 63, 66). Thus much Elisha relates of
was, as we presume, with the pope in Constan- Joseph in his 7th chap., his last as Neumann
tinople he was suddenly called upon to write believes. In an 8th chap, added by Langlois
his Gothic history, and, as he tells us, had to in 1867, and in another Armenian writer,
make the best of what materials he had at Lazarus of Barb (c. 48 in Langlois, ii. 315), it
hand or could remember. The de Getarum Ori- is stated that in the 6th year of Isdigerd (i.e.
gin e et Rebus Gestis was the result, [a.h.d.a.] 455) and on the 25th of the month Hroditz,
Josephus (2), catholicos of Armenia (Le the patriarch Joseph, Sahag, bp. of Resch-
Quien, Or. Christ, i. 1079). St. Martin (Mem. douni, the priests Arsenius, Leontius, Mousche,
siir V Arm. i 437) places him between Mesrob and the deacon Kadchadch were executed in
and Melide, giving his dates as 441-452, but the province of Abar, near Revan, a village
these figures do not represent his place in the of the Moks. Lazarus (I.e.) records his dying
series accurately. The Persian king contem- words. On the position of Abar see Langlois
porary with him was Isdigerd II., and the (t. ii. p. 186, note i), and Neumann (p. 77,
governor of Armenia was an Armenian Chris- note 18). [Leontius (74).] [g.t.s.]
tian Vasag, prince of the Siounians (442-452). Joshua a Syrian monk, a native
(1) Stylites,
Joseph was one of the band of Armenian of Edessa, entered the monastery of Zuenin
scholars trained under Mesrob and Isaac the near Amida in Mesopotamia. After some
Great and afterwards in the schools of Athens years he determined to imitate St. Simeon and
and Constantinople. [Mesrobes.] He re- live the rest of his days on a column, from
turned to Armenia probably c. 434. His which he derives his distinguishing name.
patriarchate occurred at a most critical Before this he had written in 507 the history
period, when Isdigerd II. was endeavouring of his times from 495, entitled, History of the
to supplant the Christianity of Armenia by Calamities which befel Edessa, Amida, and all
Zoroastrianism. For a full contemporary ac- Mesopotamia. A full description, with quota-
count of this see Elisha Vartabed's Hist, of tions from the original Syriac, is given by
Vartan, trans, from the Armenian by Neu- Assemani (Bibl. Or. i. 260). It was published
mann and Langlois. Isdigerd issued a pro- at Leipzig in 1878, in the A bh and Inn gen fiir die

clamation to the Armenians one of the Kunde des Morgenlandes, in the original Syriac,
utmost valuable ancient Zoroastrian docu- with a French trans, by Abbe Paulin Martin.
ments we possess. A reply was issued in 450 The translator describes it as the most ancient
by a synod of 17 bishops held at Ardashad. history extant in Syriac, and specially valu-
The name of Joseph, bp. of Ararat, heads the able because of Joshua's personal share in the
subscriptions (Neum. 13, 14, 87), the province events. His text corrects many omissions and
of Ararat being one of 15 into which Armenia mistakes in Assemani's abstract. He fixes its
was divided. This seems J oseph's first appear- composition between 510-515, and classes
ance in these events. The reply is given in full Joshua as a Monophysite, while Assemani re-
by Elisha for the spirit of it see Isdigerd II.
; garded him as orthodox, [i.o.s. and g.t.s.]
Exasperated by that bold manifesto, the king Jovian US (1), Flavius, Christian emperor
ordered the leading Arm.enian princes to from June 27, 363, to Feb. 16, 364. The
appear before him, and they, depositing a authorities for the Life of Jovian are generally
confession of their faith with Joseph, obeyed the same as those for that of Julian. The
(ib. 21). In the royal capital on the feast of fifth oration of Themistius, and certain tracts
Easter, 450, they were summoned into the printed among the works of St. Athanasius,
king's presence, and peremptorily ordered to are important for the special points of his
adore the sun on its rising the next day. edict of toleration and dealings with the
Finding Isdigerd inexorable, they feigned Arians. There is a useful Life of Jovian by
compliance, and Isdigerd, accepting the act as the Abbe J. P. R. de la Bleterie (Paris, 1748,
a formal submission of their country, sent 2 vols., and 1776, i vol.), containing also a
them home accompanied by a band of magi, translation of some of Julian's works.
who, supported by a large military force, were
to instruct the Armenians in the Zoroastrian
Life. —
Jovian was born c. a.d. 331. His
father, the count Varronianus, was an inhabit-
religion and laws. On the appearance of this ant of the territory of Singidunum (Belgrade)
armed mission the bishops went among their in Moesia, the country which gave birth to so
flocks exhorting them to resist. The people many emperors (Victor, Epit. 68). At the
were resolved, and a Holy League was formed. time of his unexpected elevation he was the
On behalf of his distressed country Joseph first of the imperial bodyguard, a position of
appealed to the emperor Theodosius II., but no very great distinction (Amm. xxv. 5, 4).
shortly afterwards (July 28, 450) Theodosius Julian died of a wound at midnight, be-
died, and Marcian his successor would not tween June 26 and 27, 363, in the midst of his
help [ib. 36, 37). The Armenian Christians retreat from Persia, leaving his army sur-
nevertheless assembled in arms, 60,000 in rounded by active enemies. Early in the
number, among them Joseph, Leontius the morning the generals and chief officers met
priest, many other priests and a multitude of to choose an emperor. Saturninus Secundus
deacons. On June 2, 451, at the Dekhmud, Sallustius, the prefect of the East, a
a tributary of the Araxes (St. Martin, i. 41), moderate heathen, who was respected also
led by their prince Vartan they were dis- by Christians, was elected but he refused
;
674 JOVIANUS PLAVIUS JOVIANUS FLAVIUS
the dangerous honour, and Jovian was Antioch. The remains of Julian were sent
chosen. to be buried at Tarsus, where he had in-
The new emperor was a Christian and a firm tended to reside on his return from the Persian
adherent of the Nicene faith. He had, indeed, war.
some claim to the honours of a confessor under The consternation of the pagans at the news
his predecessor, but Julian, it is said, did not of the death of Julian and the accession of
wish to part with so good an officer (Socr. iii. Jovian was as sudden and as marvellous as
22). He was in other respects a man of no the triumph of the Christians. All Antioch
very marked ability (Amm. xxv. 5, 4 ;
Eutro- made holiday, churches, chapels, and even
pius, X. 17). He was a generous, bluff, and theatres being filled with cries of joy, and
hearty soldier, popular with his companions, taunts at the discomfiture of the heathen
fond of jest and merriment, and addicted to party. " Where are the prophecies and
the pleasures common in the camp (Vict. Epit. foolish Maximus ? God has conquered and
6 ; Amm. xxv. 10, 15). He had a bright and His Christ " (Theod. iii. 28). St. Gregory was
open face, always cheerful, and lighted with writing his bitter and brilliant invectives at
a pair of clear grey eyes. His figure was Nazianzus, where but a few months before
extremely tall and his gait rather heavy, and the Christian population had trembled at
it was long before an imperial wreath could be the approach of Julian {Oral. iv. and v., the
found to fit him. He was only a moderate (XTrfKLTenTiKoi : they were probably not de-
scholar, and in this and many other points livered from the pulpit see p. 75 of the
;

was a strong contrast to Julian (Amm. I.e.). Benedictine ed. Paris, 1778). Some acts of
Though he was a sincere believer, we cannot violence were committed, especially in tbe^
credit the statement of Rufinus that he would destruction of temples and altars, and more
not accept the empire till he had obliged all were apprehended. At Constantinople a
his soldiers to become Christians (H. E. ii. i). prefect of Julian's appointment was in danger
But the greater part of the army did, no doubt, of his life (Sievers, Libanius, p. 128 ;cf.
return without difficulty to the profession of Lib. Epp. 1179, 1186, 1489). Heathen priests,
faith to which they had been accustomed philosophers, rhetoricians, and magicians hid
under Constantius. The labarum again be- themselves in fear, or were maltreated by
came their standard; and Jovian's coins the populace. Libanius himself was in peril
at Babylon, and was accused before Jovian
present, besides the ^, the new and striking of never ceasing his ill-omened lamentations
type (now so familiar) of the ball surmounted for his dead friend, instead of wishing good
by the cross, the symbol of the church domin- fortune to the new reign (Liban. de Vita sua,
ating the world (see Eckhel, Num. Vet. viii. vol. i. pp. 93, 94, ed. Reiske ; cf. Sievers,

p. 147). Amniianus notes that sacrifices were Libanius, pp. 128 ff. Chastel, Destruction du
;

offered, and entrails of victims inspected on the Paganisme, pp. 154, 135, who, however, is
morning of Jovian's inauguration to decide on not accurate in all details). Libanius was
the movements of the army (xxv. 6, i). But saved by the intervention of a Cappadocian
directly the reins of power were in his hands friend, who told the emperor that he would
such tilings apparently ceased at once. gain nothing by putting him to death, as his
We need not describe at length the per- orations would survive him and become cur-
plexities of the Roman generals in their rent. This looks as if his Monody was already
endeavours to escape from Persia, and the written and known at least by report, though
protracted negotiations with Sapor, to whose probably only delivered to a select circle of
terms Jovian felt it imperative to submit friends. The Epitaphius was probably not
(Eutrop. Brev. x. 17 ; Amm. xxv. 7, 8). The completed and published till five or six years
terms were ignoble and humiliating : the later (Sievers, p. 132).
cession of the five Mesopotamian provinces To appease this disturbed state of feeling
which Galerius had added to the Roman Jovian issued an edict that all his subjects
dominions, and of the fortresses of Nisibis and should enjoy full liberty of conscience, though
Singara, the former of which had been the he forbade the practice of magic (Themistis
bulwark of the empire since the reign of Oratio, v. pp. 68-70 cf. Chastel, p. 136).
;

Mithridates. No less disgraceful was the This was probably one of the earliest of
sacrifice of Arsaces, king of Armenia, the firm his laws. It is impossible to reconcile the
ally of the Romans and a Christian prince, positive statements of Themistius with that
allied to the house of Constantine by his of Sozomen, that Jovian ordered that Chris-
marriage with Olympias (Amm. ib. 9-12; cf. tianity should be the only religion of his
Greg. Naz. Or. v. 13). But probably no better subjects (Soz. vi. 3) ; and Socrates, who quotes
terms could have been obtained without the the oration of Themistius, says that all the
loss of nearly all the army- temples were shut, and that the blood of
After crossing the Tigris with difficulty, the sacrifices ceased to flow (iii. 24). Jovian may
Roman forces marched for six days through very probably have strongly recommended the
very desert country to the fortress of Ur, Christian faith in his edicts without pretending
where they were met by a convoy of provi- to enforce it, and the cessation of sacrifice
sions (Amm. xxv. 8, 16). The scenes at seems to have been a popular rather than a
Nisibis were heartrending when the inhabit- directlv imperial movement (the passage in
ants were bidden leave their homes. Jovian, Libanius's Monodia, vol. i. p. 309, appears to
however, was firm (xxv. 9, 2). The Persian refer to Constantius rather than Jovian ;
and
standard was hoisted on the citadel, in token that in the Epitaphius, pp. 619, 620, was
of the change of ownership and the weeping probably written later). Jovian allowed the
and broken-hearted people were settled in the philosophers Maximus and Prisan, the intimate
suburb of Amida. The emperor proceeded to friends of Julian, to enjoy the honours they
JOVIANUS FLAVIUS JOVINIANUS 575

had received during Julian's reign (Eus. Vita church on his making a declaration of ortho-
Maximi, p. 58, ed. Boissonade, 1822). doxy. Soon after this he returned in triumph
The reaction under Joviau, so far as it was to Alexandria.
directed by his orders, consisted rather in Jovian quitted Antioch in Dec, and came
favours granted to Christians than in acts of by forced marches to Tarsus, where he
oppression towards paganism. The edict of adorned the tomb of Julian. At Tyana, in
toleration was perhaps issued at Antioch, Cappadocia, he received the news that Mala-
which he reached some time in Oct., having rich had declined the charge of Gaul, and that
been at Edessa on Sept. 27 (Cod. Theod. vii. Jovinus still continued in his own position,
4, g = Cod. Just. xii. 37, 2 ; it is omitted by but faithful to the new regime. Jovian also
accident in Hanel's Series Chronologia, p. 1654, learned that his father-in-law Lucillianus had
but is given by Godefroy and Kruger). He been murdered at Rheims in an accidental
restored the immunities of the clergy, and the mutiny of the Batavian cohorts (Amm. xxv.
stipends paid to the virgins and widows of the 10 ;Zos. iii. 35). The deputies of the
church, and such part of the allowance of corn Western armies saluted their new sovereign
which Julian had withdrawn as the state of as he descended from Mount Taurus. With
public finances allowed (Soz. vi. 3 ;
Theod. them was Valentinian, so soon to be his suc-
i. II, iv. 4). A count named Magnus, who cessor, whom he appointed captain of the
had burned the church of Berytus in the late second division of scutarii (Amm. xxv. 10, 9).
reign, was ordered to rebuild it, and nearly Another and a heavier blow followed the —
lost his head (Theod. iv. 22, p. 180 b). At the news of the loss of his father Varronianus,
same time probably Jovian issued a law con- whom he had for some time hoped to associate
demning to death those who solicited or forced with himself in the consulship of the ensuing
into marriage the virgins of the church {Cod. year. The loss was softened by the arrival
Theod. ix. 25, 2, this law is addressed to of his wife Charito and infant son Varronianus,
Secundus, prefect of the East, and is dated at who, it was determined, should fill the place
Antioch, Feb. 19, a day or two after Jovian's destined for his grandfather. The inaugura-
death according to most accounts. Either tion of the new consuls took place on Jan. i at
we must read Ancyrae or suppose the month Ancyra (Amm. xxv. 10, 11 cf. Themist. Or.
;

wrongly given, see the commentators ad loc). v. p. 71). Zonaras {Annul, xiii. 14) says that
Jovian is remembered in church history on Charito never saw her husband after his
account of his connexion with St. Athanasius elevation, but this seems a mistake (see De
more than any other of his actions. The Broglie, iv. p. 485 n.). The oration of The-
death of Julian was, it is said, revealed to his mistius was, it seems, delivered at this time.
companion Theodore of Tabenne, and the Jovian still pushed on, notwithstanding the
bishop took courage to return to Alexandria. inclemency of the weather, and arrived at an
Here he received a letter from the new em- obscure place called Dadastane, about halfway
peror praising him for his constancy under all between Ancyra and Nicaca. About Feb. 16,
persecutions, reinstating him in his functions, after a heavy supper, he went to bed in an
and desiring his prayers (Athan. Op. i. 622 = apartment recently built. The plaster being
vol. ii. col. 812, ed. Migne). Jovian in another still damp, a brazier of charcoal was brought
letter (no longer extant) desired him to draw in to warm the air, and in the morning he was
up a statement of the Catholic faith. He found dead in his bed, after a short reign of
accordingly summoned a council, and wrote a only 8 months. (Amm. xxv. 10, 12, 13, de-
synodal letter, stating and confirming the scribes his death the date is variously given
;

Nicene Creed {I.e. and Theod. iv. 3). Armed as Mar. 16, 17, and 18 see Clinton.) He was
;

with this, he set sail for Antioch (Sept. 5, 363), buried at Constantinople, and after 10 days'
where he met with a most gracious reception. interval Valentinian succeeded.
The leaders of other ecclesiastical parties had Owing to the shortness of Jovian's reign,
been able to gain little beyond expressions of inscriptions relating to him (other than those
the emperor's desire for unity and toleration. on milestones) are very rare, but there is one
The Arians, and especially bp. Lucius, who over the portal of the church of Panaghia at
had been set up as a rival of Athanasius, Palaeopolis in Corfu. It may be found in
followed Jovian about in his daily rides in the Corpus Inser. Graec. vol. iv. 8608, from
hopes of prejudicing him against the champion various authorities, and was also copied on the
of Catholicity {I.e. pp. 624, 625 = vol. ii. col. spot by bp. Wordsworth of Lincoln in 1832,
819 ff.). The bluff emperor reining up his who alone gives the first line :
" aOrr} irvXr]
steed to receive their petitions, and his rough rov Kvpiov SUeoi. eiaeXevaovre [i.e. SiVatji
and sensible answers mixed with Latin words dcreXevaovTail iv avrrj. [j-W.]
to their old and worn-out charges and irrele- Jovinianus (2), condemned as a heretic by
vant pleas, stand out witb singular vividness. synods at Rome and Milan e. 390. Our fullest
We can almost hear him saying, " Feri, feri," information about him is derived from St.
to his guard, in order to be rid of his trouble- Jerome, who wrote two books, adversus
some suitors. Jovinianum. From these we learn that he
Little seems to have been effected by had been a monk, living austerely, but
Athanasius with the Arians at Antioch, and adopted certain views which led him to sub-
Jovian was disappointed in his endeavour to stitute luxury in dress and personal habits and
terminate the schism between the Catholic food for the asceticism of the convent, the
bps. Meletius and Paulinus (Basil, Ep. 89, opinions ascribed to him by Jerome being :

vol.iii. p. 258, ed. Gaume). A coldness ensued (i) A virgin is no better as such than a wife
between Meletius and Athanasius, and the in the sight of God. (2) Abstinence is no
latter was led to recognize the bishop of the better than a thankful partaking of food. (3)
Eustathians as the true head of the Antiochene A person baptized with the Spirit as well as
576 Juliana JULlANUS
with water cannot sin. {4) All sins are equal. at this step.She supported the cause of
(5) There is but one grade of punishment and Chrysostom at Rome and entertained his
one of reward in the future world. We learn messengers. His thanks were conveyed in a
further from St. Augustine (lib. i. contra letter from his place of exile (a.d. 406),
Julian, c. ii.), and from the letter of the exhorting her to hold fast and aid in allaying
Milanese synod to Siricius (Ambros. Op. Ep. the waves of controversy (Chrys. Ep. 169).
42), that Jovinian maintained tenets as to She fled with her daughter to Africa from
the Virgin Mary's virginity in giving birth to Rome when it was sacked by Alaric, but fell
Jesus Christ in opposition to the orthodox into the rapacious hands of count Hera-
view. He was living at Rome (Hieron. clion, who robbed her of half her property.
Prolog, adv. Pelag.), and wrote in Latin (ib. She was commended to the African churches
lib. ii. adv. Jovin. § 37). Certain Christians by pope Innocent in a laudatory letter (Ep.
at Rome, amongst them Jerome's correspond- 15), which takes the rank of a decree in the
ent Pammachius, brought the book to the collection of papal rescripts by Dion. Exig.
notice of Siricius, bp. of Rome, who called a (Coll. Dec. 39 Hieron. Ep. 130, ed. Vail.).
;

meeting of his clergy and condemned the new She became acquainted with Augustine while
heresy. Hoping for protection from Theo- in Africa, and she and her daughter had
dosius, who was now at Milan, Jovinian and relations with Pelagius, who wrote a long
his friends proceeded thither ; but Siricius letter to Demetrias (given among the Sup-
sent three of his presbyters with a letter of posititia of Jerome; ed. Vail. vol. xi.) vindi-
warning to the church at Milan. Ambrose cating free will by her example. Augustine,
responded warmly to Siricius, and with eight with Alypius, wrote to Juliana (Aug. Ep. 188,
other bishops endorsed the sentence passed by A.D. 418), arguing that all the virtues of Deme--
the Roman church. In a letter by Ambrose in trias were from the grace of God. [w.h.f.]
the name of the synod of Milan to Siricius Julianus (15) (Edanensis), bp. of Eclana
conveying this judgment, it is stated that the or Aeculanum (Noris, ad Hist. Pelag. in 0pp.
emperor "execrated" the impiety of the iv. 747, ed. 1729-1732), near Beneventum
Jovinianists, and that all at Milan who had (ib. i. 18, in 0pp. i. 178 Pagi, Critic, s.a. 419,
;

seen them shunned them like a contagion. In ix.), a distinguished leader of the Pelagians of
409 Jerome, writing against Vigilantius, refers 5th cent. A native of Apulia (August. Opus
to Jovinian as having recently died. Imperf. vi. 18 in Patr. Lat. xlv. 1542), his
The heresies of Jovinian would be especially birth is assigned to c. 386 (Garner, Diss. i.
obnoxious to the great ecclesiastics of his ad part. i. 0pp. Mar. Merc. c. 6, in Patr. Lat.
time, who were wont to insist strongly upon xlviii. 291). His father was an Italian bishop
the merit of virginity and of abstinence. named Memor or Memorius (Mar. Merc.
Jerome writes against Jovinian, he says, in Siibnot. iv. 4, Garner's n. g. ti.s. p. 130 ;

answer to an appeal made by holy brethren Pagi, U.S. Cappelletti, Chics. Ital. xx. 19) and
;

at Rome who desired that he should crush the his mother a noble lady named Juliana (Mar.
Epicurus of the Christians with evangelical Merc. U.S.). Augustine of Hippo was intimate
and apostolic vigour. The vigour of the reply with the family, and wrote of them in terms
was a little too much even for them (quod of great affection and respect, c. 410 (Ep. loi ;

nimius fuerim). His praise of virginity Noris, 0pp. i. 422, iv. 747). Julian, c. 404,
seemed to do some wrong to marriage. Ac- became a "lector " in the church over which
cordingly Pammachius (prudenter et amanter, his father presided, and while holding that
as Jerome acknowledges) thought it best to office married a lady named la. Paulinus,
suppress the copies of Jerome's answer. But afterwards bp. of Nola, composed an elaborate
the books had already circulated too much to Epithalamium, which represents him as on
be recalled. Whatever Jerome wrote was terms of great intimacy with the family
seized upon by friends or enemies, and quickly (Poem. XXV. in Pali. Ixi. 633). By c. 410
made public (Ep. 48, 49). Jovinian is not Julian had become a deacon, but whether la
accused of any worse immorality than an was then living does not appear.
indulgence in good living, which was probably He was consecrated to the episcopate by
exaggerated rhetorically by Jerome. Augus- Innocent I. c. 417 (Mar. Merc. Commonit. iii.
tine reproaches him with having led conse- 2), but the name of his see is variously given.
crated virgins of advanced age to accept Marius Mercator, who was his contemporary,
husbands. He himself abstained from mar- distinctly speaks of him as " Episcopus
riage, merely because of the troubles involved Eclanensis " (Nestor. Tract, praef. § i, Migne,
in it. See Hieron. lib. i. a^it^. /ou. §3; August. 184 ; Theod. Mops, praef. § 2, Migne, 1043).
de Haer. § 82, lib. ii. de Nupt. et Concep. § 23 ;
Innocent I. died Mar. 12, 417. Up to that
Retract, lib. ii. § 23
; also Haller, Jovinianus date Julian had maintained a high reputation
sein Leben und seine Lehre in Texte und Unter- for ability, learning, and orthodoxy, and
such. xvii.newser. (Lcipz. 1897). [j.ll.d.] Mercator concludes that he must have sym-
Juliana (8), mother of the virgin Demetrias, pathized with Innocent's condemnation of the
to whom we have letters from Jerome, Au- Pelagians (Commonit. iii. 2). Yet there is
gustine, pope Innocent, and Pelagius. She was reason to believe that even Innocent had
of noble birth, being connected through her ground for at least suspecting his proclivities
mother Proba and her husband Olybrius with (August, cont. Julian, i. 13). When the cases
some of the greatest families of Rome, and was of Pelagius and Coelestius were reopened by
possessed of great wealth. When her daugh- Zosimus, shortly after the death of Innocent,
ter proposed to take vows of virginity, she J ulian seems to have expressed himself strong-
refrained from influencing her ; but when ly in their favour in the hearing of Mercator
Demetrias appeared in the church clad in the (Siibnot. vii. 2 Noris, 0pp. i. 183) and when
; ;

dress of a virgin she shewed her great delight Zosimus issued his Epistola Tractoria against
JULIANUS JULIANUS 57f

the Pelagians (a.d. 417 Jaffe, Reg. Pont.


;
some of his fellow-exiles went into Cilicia and
Rom. 417) and sent it to the bishops of remained for a time with Theodorus, bp. of
the East and West for subscription, Julian Mopsuestia (Mar. Merc. Theod. Mops, praef.
was among those who refused. He was who is charged by Mercator with having
§ 2),
accordingly deposed, and afterwards exiled been one of the originators of Pelagianism
under the edicts issued by the emperor Honor- (Subnot. praef. § i, Symb. Theod. Mops, praef.
ius in Mar. 418 (Mar. Merc. Commonit. iii. i). § 2) and who wrote against Augustine (Phot.
Julian now addressed two letters to Zosimus Bibl. Cod. 177 Mar. Merc. Garnier, ad Prim.
;

(August. Op. Imp. i. 18), one of which was very Partem, diss. vi.). Meanwhile the rejoinder
generally circulated throughout Italy before of Augustine had reached Julian, who an-
it reached the pontiff. Of this Mercator has swered it in 8 books, addressed to Florus, a
preserved some fragments {Sitbnot. vi. 10-13, fellow-recusant (Co. Eph. a.d. 431, actio v.
ix. 3). Of the other we have no remains (Pagi,in Mansi, iv. 1337 Mar. Merc. Subnot. praef.).
;

Critic. A.D. 418, Ivii.). Mercator has given various extracts (Subnot,
About the same time Julian addressed a passim), but it is best known from Augustine's
letter to Rufus, bp. of Thessalonica (410-431), elaborate Opus Imperfectum, which was
on his own behalf and that of i8 fellow- evoked by it (August. Opp. t. x. in Patr. Lat.
recusants. Rufus was vicarius of the Roman xlv. 1050), but left incomplete. On the death
see in Illyricum (Innocent's ep. to Rufus, of Boniface I. and the succession of Celestine I.
June 17, 412, in Mansi, viii. 751) and just then in Sept. 422, Julian apparently left Cilicia
in serious collision with Atticus the patriarch and returned to Italy, probably hoping that
of Constantinople. As Atticus was a strenu- the new pontiff might reconsider the case of
ous opponent of the Pelagians (Noris, 0pp. the Pelagians, especially as a variance had
iv. 884), Julian and his brethren perhaps then arisen between the Roman see and the
thought Rufus might be persuaded to favour African bishops. Celestine repulsed him, and
them {ib. i. 201, 202). Zosimus died Dec. 26, caused him to be exiled a second time (Prosper.
418, and was succeeded by Boniface I., Apr. contr. Collator, xxi. 2, in Patr. Lat. Ii. 271).
10, 419. The letter of Julian to Rufus, with Julian was also condemned, in his absence, by
another to the clergy of Rome which he a council in Cilicia, Theodorus concurring in the
denied to be his (August. Op. Imp. i. 18), censure (Mar. Merc. Syynb. Theod. Mop s.
were answered by Augustine in his contra praef. § 3 Garnier, ad Prim. Part. diss. ii.
;

Duas Epistolas Pelagianorum. Julian avows iMigne, 359). On this Julian went to Con-
an earnest desire to gain the aid of the Oriental stantinople, where the same fate awaited him
bishops against the " profanity of Mani- both from Atticus and his successor Sisinnius
cheans," for so he styles the Catholics (cont. (a.d. 426, 427) (Garnier, u.s. 361 Coelest. ad
;

Duas. Ep. ii. i) accuses Zosimus of tergiver-


; Nestor, in Mansi, iv. 1025). On the accession
isation and the Roman clergy of having been of Nestorius to the patriarchate (a.d. 428) the
unduly influenced in their condemnation of expectations of Julian were again raised, and
the Pelagians (ii. 3) ; charges both with he appealed bJth to Nestorius and to the
various heresies (ii. 2-5) ; and protests that emperor Theodosius II. Both at first gave
by their means the subscriptions of nearly all him some encouragement (Mar. Merc. Nestor.
the Western bishops had been uncanoni'^ally Tract, praef. § i), which may be why there is
extorted to a dogma which he characterizes no mention of the Pelagians in the celebrated
as " non minus stultum quam impiura " (iv. edict which the emperor issued against here-
8, § 20 init.). Garnier assigns the letter to sies at the instance of Nestorius (Cod. Theod.
Rufus and the two to Zosimus to a.d. 418 XVI. V. 65, May 30, 428 ; Socr. H. E.
(ad Primam Partem, diss. i. Migne, 292). vii. The patriarch wrote to Celestine
29).
When Julian addressed his two letters to more than once in his behoof and that of his
Zosimus he was preparing a reply to the first friends (Nestor. Ep. to Celest. in Mansi, iv.
of Augustine's two books de Nuptiis et Con- 1022, 1023), but the favour he shewed them
cupiscentid (Mar. Merc. Subnot. praef. § 7), necessitated his defending himself in a public
which he addressed to a fellow-recusant discourse delivered in their presence, and
named Turbantius, whose prayers he earnestly translated by Mercator (u.s. Migne, 189 seq.).
asks that the church may be delivered from In 429 Mercator presented his Commoni-
the defilement of Manicheism (ib. iii.). He torium de Coelestio to the emperor, wherein he
sent some extracts from the work, which was carefully relates the proceedings against the
in four books, and apparently entitled Contra Pelagians and comments severely upon their
eos qui nuptias damnant et fructus earum teaching. Julian and his friends were then
diabolo assignant (August, de Nuptiis et Con- driven frcm Constantinople by an imperial
cupisc. ii. 4, § 11), to Valerius, who forwarded edict (Mar. Merc. Commonit. praef. § i).
them to his friend Augustine, who at once Towards the close of 430 Celestine convened
rejoined in a second book de Nuptiis et Con- a council at Rome, which condemned Julian
cupiscentid (August. Retract, ii. 53). When and others once more (Garnier, u.s. diss. ii.).
Julian's work subsequently came into his Whither he went from Constantinople does
hands, Augustine published a fuller rejoinder not appear, but he with other Pelagians seem
in his contra Julianum Pelagianum. Augus- to have accompanied Nestorius to the convent
tine freely quotes his antagonist, and we see of Ephesus, A.D. 431, and took part in the
that Julian again insisted upon the Mani- " Conciliabulum " held by Joannes of Antioch
cheism of his opponents (lib. ii. passim) ;
(Relat. ad Coel. in Mansi, iv. 1334). Baronius
again charged Zosimus with prevarication (s.a. 431 Ixxix.) infers from one of the letters of
(iii. and elaborated the whole anthro-
I, vi. 2), Gregory the Great (lib. ix. ind. ii. ep. 49 in Patr.
pology for which he contended. Lat. XV. Ixxvii. 981) that the " Conciliabulum"
When driven from the West, Julian and absolved Juliaa and his friends, but Cardinal
37
; "

578 JULIANUS JULIANUS


Noris (0pp. i. 362) has shewn that the council was present at the synod in Constantinople,
repeat their condemnation of the Pelagians, granted by the emperor at the demand of
expressly mentioning Julian by name {Relat. Eutyches to verify the records of the former
U.S. ;Mar. Merc. Nestor. Tract, praef. § 2). council. Here we find him disputing occa-
Sixtus III., the successor of Celestine (July sionally the exact accuracy of the " Acta "
31, 432), when a presbyter, had favoured the (Labbe, iv. 231 (2), c. 234 (2) b ; Tillem. xv.
Pelagians, much to the grief of Augustine 511). He wrote to Leo a letter which pro-
{Ep. 174). Julian attempted to recover his duced two replies dated the same day, June 13,
lost position through him, but Sixtus evidently 449, the first of a long series of letters from Leo
treated him with severity, mainly at the to Julian (Epp. xxxiv. xxxv.). The latter of
instigation of Leo, then a presbyter, who the two contains an elaborate dogmatic state-
became his successor, a.d. 440 (Prosper. ment against Eutyches. After this Julian
Chron. s.a. 439). When pontiff himself, Leo became one of the pope's chief mediums for
shewed the same spirit toward the Pelagians, impressing his wishes and policy on the East.
especially toward Julian (de Promiss. Dei, pt. [Leo.] Through the Eutychian troubles
iv. c. 6 in Patr. Lat. li. 843). We hear no more Julian remained true to the faith and suffered
of Julian until his death in Sicily, c. 454 (Gen- so much that, as he tells Leo, he thought of
nad. Script. Eccl. xlv. in Patr. Lat. Iviii. 1084 retiring to Rome (Ep. Ixxxi. 1042). It was
Gamier, u.s. diss. i. Migne, 297). Julius of Puteoli, however, not this Julian,
Some years after his death Julian was again who was papal legate at the council of Ephesus.
condemned by Joannes Talaia, formerly patri- Leo commended Julian to the favour of Pul-
arch of Alexandria, but c. 484 bp. of Nola in cheria and Anatolius of Constantinople as one
Italy (Phot. Bibl. Cod. liv. ; s.f. August. 0pp. who had always beenfaithful to St. Flavian
in Patr. Lat. xlv. 1684). (Epp. Ixxix. Ixxx. 1037, 1041, dated Apr. 451).
Julian was an able and a learned man. In June 451 he begs him to associate himself
Gennadius speaks of him as " vir acer ingenio, with his legates, Lucentius and Basil, to the
in divinis Scripturis doctus, Graeca et Latina council of Chalcedon (Ep. Ixxxvi. 1063). He
lingua scholasticus " [u.s.). He was of high is commended to Marcian the emperor as a
character, and especially distinguished for " particeps " with them (Ep. xc. 1065). His
generous benevolence (Gennad. u.s.), and exact position at that council appears some-
seems actuated throughout the controversy by what ambiguous. He is not mentioned among
a firm conviction that he was acting in the the legates in the letter of Leo to the council
interests of what he held to be the Christian (Ep. xciii. 1070), but in the Acts of the council
faith and of morality itself. is always spoken of as holding that position
Besides his works already mentioned, Bede (Labbe, iv. 80 c, 852 c, 559 e). In the list
speaks of his Opuscula on the Canticles, and of signatures he does not appear among the
among them of a libellus de A more, and a legates of Rome, yet higher than his own
" "
"libellus" de Bono Constantiae, both of which rank, as bp. of Cos, would entitle him to
he charges with Pelagianism, giving from each appear, and among the metropolitans (cf.
some extracts (in Cantica, praef. Migne, 1065- Tillem. xv. 645, and note, 43). His condem-
1077). Gamier claims Julian as the translator nation of Dioscorus, with reasons assigned,
of the Libellus Fidei a Rufmo Palaestinae Pro- appears in the acta of the third session of the
vinciae Presbytero, which he has published in council (Labbe, iv. 427 c). In the matter of
his ed. of Marius Mercator (ad Primam Partem, the claims of Bassian and Stephen to the see
dissert, v. Migne, 449, dissert, vi. Migne, 623), of Ephesus, he gives his voice first for setting
and as the author of the Liber Defmitionum both aside, then for allowing a local council
seu Ratiocinaiionum, to which Augustine re- to choose (701 D, 703 d). He displeased Leo
plied in his de Perfecttone Juslitiae (note 6 in by not resisting the 28th canon of the council
Mar. Merc. Subnot. Migne, 145, 146). Cf. A. in favour of the claims of Constantinople
Bruckner, Julian von Eclanum (Leipz. 1897) (Ep. xcviii. 1098), and by writing to Leo
in Texte und Untersuch. xv. 3. [t.w.d.] begging him to give his assent to it (Ep. cvii.
Julianus (27), bp. of Cos, the friend and 1172). After this, however, he is in as good
frequent correspondent of Leo the Great. He favour as ever. From Mar. 453 he was
was by birth an Italian. Being educated at apocrisiarius or deputy of the see of Rome at
Rome (Leo. Mag. Ep. Ixxxi. 1042 Migne, Ep. the court of Constantinople. Leo requests
;

cxiii. 1190) he was acquainted with Latin as him to remain constantly at court, watching
well as Greek (Ep. cxiii. 1194) and was thus zealously over the interests of the faith (Epp.
useful to Leo, who was ignorant of Greek. cxi. 1187, cxiii. 1190, "specularinon desinas";
Leo found in him a man after his own heart. cf. Tillem. xv. 761). In Mar. 453 Leo re-
He describes him as a " part of himself " (Ep. quested him to make a complete translation
cxxv. 1244). Long experience led him to put of the Acts of the council of Chalcedon (Ep.
the fullest confidence in his orthodoxy, erudi- cxiii. 1 1 94). Julian seems to have returned
tion, watchfulness, and zeal (Ep. xxxv. 875, to his diocese in 457 (cf. Tillem. xvii. 762, 791)
xci. 1066). Nothing could exceed the value and wrote a reply, in his own name only, to
of such a man to Leo to watch over the inter- the circular letter of the emperor Leo on the
ests of the faith and the Roman see in the excesses of Timothy Aelurus and the authority
East. Julian was present at the council of of the Chalcedonian council. [Leo, emperor.]
Constantinople in 448 and professed his belief Julian urges that Timotheus should be pun-
in the " two natures in one Person
" —
an ex- ished by the civil power and maintains
pression which Dioscorus could not tolerate strongly the authority of the council. " For

when he heard it read at Chalcedon and sub- where were assembled so many bishops, where
scribed the condemnation of Eutyches (Labbe, were present the holy Gospels, where was so
Concilia, iv. 188 b, 231 b). In Apr. 449 he much united prayer, there, we believe, was
;

JULIANUS JULIANUS 579


also present with invisible power the author of tracing not merelv His sufferings
all creation " (Labbe, iv. themselves
942 Or. Chr. i. 935).
; but even the possibility of suffering "
After this no more is known of him. [cc] to His
self-sacrifice (Person of Christ, ed.
Julianus (47), bp. of Halicarnassus in the Clark ii
'•129). Jo. Damasc. Orth. Fid. iii. 28 Eus •
province of Caria ; a leader of the Mono- Thess. contr. Andr.
physites. In 5 1 1 he was active in conjunction Phot. Bibl. Cod'. 162
; •

Ihom. Aquin. Sum. p. iii. q. i. art. 5 concl. '


with Severus and others in instigating the
J uhan by some means recovered his see
emperor Anastasius to depose Macedonius Halicarnassus, but in the council of Constanti-
of
patriarch of Constantinople (Theod. Lect. ii. nople A.D. 536, under Agapetusbp. of
26). Theophanes erroneously speaks of him he was again deposed (Theoph. s.a. "520
Rome

as bp. of Caria before he was bp. of Halicar-
Mansi, viii. 869 Libell. Syn. in Labbe v!
nassus (Chron. a.c. 503, in Patr. Gk.cvin.^62). ;

276). After this he disappears, but 'his


On the accession of Justin I. in 518, severe opinions continued to spread long afterwards
measures were taken against the Monophysites especially in the East
and Julian was driven from his see. He went where his followers
;

ultimately divided, one part holding


to Alexandria, followed quickly by Severus "that
the body of our Lord was absolutely
on his expulsion from Antioch (Liberatus (kotA
Travra rpbtrov) incorruptible from
Brev. c. 19 Evagr. H. E. iv. 4 the very
;
Vict.
; '
Unio itself " (^jt
Tunun. Chron. s.a. 539). '
air^s rvs evcbcrew)
Timotheus the another, that it was not absolutely ;

successor of Dioscorus the younger received incor.


both kindly, and they settled near the city. ruptible but potentially (Swd/nu) the
reverse
Shortly afterwards a monk appealed to yet could not become corruptible
because the
Severus as to whether the body of our Lord Word prevented it and a third that it was
;

not only incorruptible from the very "


should be called corruptible. He answered Unio "
that the "fathers" had declared that it but also increate (ov ix6vov dtpdaprov i^ avTij^
should. Some -Alexandrians hearing this ifibaem, dXXA kuI Slktkttou). These last were
asked Julian, who said that the "fathers" distinguished as Actistitae. Tim. Presb. u.s.
had declared the contrary. In the fierce con- 43 ;
Leont. Byzant. contr. Nestor, et Euiych.
troversy thus evoked the Julianists charged n. in Patr. Gk.lxxxvi. 1315, 1358; Id. de Sect.
the Severians with being Phthartolatrae or act x. tb. 1259 Anastas. Sinait. Viae Dux
;

Corrupticolae, while the Severians charged ^^'''- ^*- '''''xix. 296 Isaac. Arm.
the Julianists with being Phantasiastae and r ^u' l^
Cath. Orat. contr. Armen. c. i, in Patr. Gk.
;

Manicheans (Liberatus, u.s. Tim. Presb. de


;
cxxxu. 1155 ;Id. de Reb. Arm. ib. 1243.
Recept. Haer. in Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi.
58; Niceph.
Four scholastici from Alexandria visited
Call. £. H. xviii. 45). The designation by Ephesus c. 549, and prevailed upon bp.
which the Julianists were more generally Procopius to avow himself a Julianist. In
known was Aphthartodocetae or Incorrup- 560, immediately after his decease, seven of
ticolae (Jo. Damasc. de Haer. his presbyters, who were also
§ 84). Much Julianists are
was written on either side. The only writings said to have placed the hands of his corpse
of Julian that remain are his Ten Anathemas on the head of a monk named Eutropius, and
a Synac version bv Paulus, the deposed then to have recited the consecration prayer
bp!
'^'^"^S published by Assemani
over him.* Eutropius afterwards ordained
?Lco^^^^'°"^'
(A/6i. Cod. Biblioth. Apost. Vatic. Catalog, iii. ten Julianist bishops, and sent them as mis-
230, 231). A Latin trans, of this valuable sionaries east and west, among other places to
document is given by Gieseler in his Coinmen- Constantinople, Antioch, and Alexandria, and
tatio qua Monophysitarum veterum into Syria, Persia, Mesopotamia, and the
variae de
Christi persona opiniones imprimis ex
ipsorum country of the Homerites (Asseman. Bibl.
effatis recens editis illustrantur (P. Or. 1. 316, 11. 86, 88, iii. pt. ii. cccclv. Wright
ii. p. 5). ;

Three letters from Julian to Severus also Cat. Syr. MSS. ii. 755). ^ '
'

translated by Paulus, and several fragments By A.D. 565 the emperor Justinian had
are among the Syrian MSS. in the Brit. become an Incorruptibilist. He issued an
Mus.
(Wright, Ca/. Syr. MSS. pt. ii. edict avowing his change of opinion and gave
554, 929, 960,
961, pt. 111. 1059). Assemani also gives three orders that " all bishops everywhere " should
letters of his to Severus from the Syriac
MSS. be compelled to accept Julianism (Evagr.
in the Vatican (u.s. iii. 223). H. E. iv. 39 Theoph. s.a. 557
; Cedrenus, ;

Leontius of Byzantium tells us that Julian Comp. Hist. ed. Bonn. i. 680 Pagi, Critic.
;

earnestly contended for the " Incorrupti- s.a. 565, ii.). This naturally encountered
bihty," because he considered the view of great opposition, especially, among others,
Severus made a distinction (5i.a(popdv) be- from Anastasius patriarch of Antioch (a.d.
tween the body of our Lord and the Word of 559-569) and Nicetiusbp. of Treves (527-566)
tiod, to allow of which was to (Nicetius, Ep. 2 in Patr. Lat. Ixviii. 380). But
acknowledge
two natures in Him (de Sect, act v. the Gaianites of Alexandria took courage
3, in Patr.
Gk. Ixxxvi. 1230). This explanation is also from the edict to erect churches in that city,
given by Theodorus Rhaituensis (de Incarnat. and elected Helpidius, an archdeacon, as their
in Patr. Gk. xci. 1498) and is fully bishop (Theoph. u.s.). He almost immediately
sustained,
especially by the eighth Anathema as pub. incurred the displeasure of the emperor and
by Gieseler. He was certainly no Phan- died on his way to Constantinople, whither he
tasiast and far from being a Manichean had been summoned. They then united with
but as Dorner justly observes, in asserting the Theodosians under Dorotheus, who, Theo-
the supernatural character of our Lord's phanes says, was one of that party, but who
body," Julian and his followers did not intend
* The corpse of Julian is said to have been
.to deny its "reality," but only aimed at treated
in the same manner bv his personal followers (Isaac.
giving greater prominence to His love by Arm. Cath. de Reb. Arm. u.s. 1248).
580 JULIANUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS
both Sophronius of Jerusalem and John of often called Julian the Apostate born a.d.
;

Ephesus, the latter of whom especially was 331 ; appointed Caesar, Nov. 6, 355 pro- ;

likely to be much better informed than the claimed Augustus, Apr. 360 ;succeeded Con-
Chronographer, say was a Julianist (Sophron. stantius as sole emperor, Nov. 3, 361 died
;

Ep. Syn. in Pair. Gk. Ixxxvii. 3191 Jo. v.


;
in Persia, June 27, 363. For the authorities
Eph. Kirchengesch. tiebers, v. Schonfelder, i. for Julian's life, see D. C. B. (4-vol. ed.), s.v.
40, p. 47). Justinian died Nov. 565. The first and still in some respects the
Tne julianists were still numerous at Alex- best English account of J ulian is to be found in
andria during the patriarchate of Eulogius Gibbon's Decline and Fall of the Roman Em-
(Phot. Bibl. Cod. 227) and continued so still —
pire, cc. 19, 22-24 a forcible and on the whole
later. Sophronius of Jerusalem speaks of very just picture. Like some other cold and
" Menas Alexandrinus, Gaianitarum propug- sceptical people (e.g. Strauss), Gibbon despised
nator " as his contemporary {u.s. 3194), and Julian's superstitious enthusiasm, and, though
Anastasius Sinaita relates a public disputation he cannot restrain some sneers at the church
with the Gaianites of that city in which he and the orthodox faith, this part of his history
took part (Viae Dux, u.s. 150 seq.). They has generally met with comparative favour
were known in the West as late as the com- at the hands of Christian critics. Mr. J. W.
mencement of 7th cent. (Greg. I. Ep. lib. ix. Barlow on Gibbon and Julian in the Dublin
ind. ii. ep. 68, ad Eus. Thessal. in Pair. Lat. Hermathena for 1877 endeavours to shew that
Ixxvii. A.D. 6or Jaffe, Reg. Pont. 145
;
Eus.
; Gibbon, in order to gain a reputation for
Thessal. u.s.).In Armenia they were very impartiality,is unfair to the emperor, whom
numerous in thetime of Gregory Bar-heb- he thinks morally and intellectually the best
raeus(Assemani, tt.s.ii. 296; Dorner, u.s. 13 n.). man " of the whole series." In the first three
Julian achieved a very high reputation as a quarters of the last century little or nothing
commentator on the Scriptures. Nicetas bp. was published in England specially on this
of Heraclea, c. 1077, selected many of the subject. An interesting and valuable essay,
most striking passages in his Catena Graecorum written for a Cambridge historical prize by
Patrum in Beatum Job from Julian's exe- the Hon. Arthur Lyttelton, has been kindly
getical and other writings. This catena was placed at the disposal of the writer of this
first published by Patricius Junius, with a article, who owes to it several important
Latin trans. (London, 1637, fob), and after- references. It is embodied in the Church
wards in Greek only at Venice (1792, fob). Qtly. Rev. for Oct. 1880, vol. xi. pp. 24-58,
The quotations from Julian are in the " Proe- The Pagan Reaction under Julian, which gives
mium " and pp. 37, 45, 66, 93, 170, 178, 228, a fresh and vigorous view of the subject.
230, 273- 437, 465, 480, 505, 539, 547-613, of Mr. Gerald H. Rendall's Hulsean Essay for
the former of these editions. Fabric. Bibl. 1876, The Emperor Julian; Paganism and
Gr. ed. Harles, viii. 647, 650 Cave, i. 495
; ; Christianity is decidedly the best account of
Ceillier, xi. 344. Cf. Usener in Lietzmann's Julian's religious position in English, perhaps
Katenen, Freib. in Breisq (1897), p. 28, and in any modern language. In French we have
the Rhein Mur. f. Phil. 1900, iv. p. 321; also the invaluable Tillemont and other writers of
Loofs in Leont. von Byzanz. (Leipz. 1887), i. church history. Besides the articles in vol. iv.
p. 30. [T.W.D.] of the Empereurs there is a special treatise on
Julianus (73), missionary priest to the the Persecution de I'Eglise par J. I'Apostat, in
Nubians in the reign of Justinian. John of vol. vii. of the Memoires. We miss, however,
Ephesus (R. Payne Smith's trans, pp. 251 seq.) a critical treatment of the authorities and wide
and Bar-hebraeus (in Asseman. Bibl. Or. ii. generalizations in Tillemont. He also seems
330) give an account of him. He was an old to exaggerate the scope of the law against
man of great worth, and one of the clergy in Christian professors. The fullest history of
attendance on Theodosius, the Monophysite Julian is that of Albert de Broglie in vols,
patriarch of Alexandria, then residing at Con- iii. and iv. of his L'Eglise et V empire romain
stantinople. Julian had long desired to au quatrieme siecle (Paris, 1866, etc.). This is
Christianize the Nobadae or Nubians, a indispensable to the student of the period. Its
wandering people E. of the Thebais and be- general attitude is that takenin this article, but
yond the limits of the empire, which they he is too anxious to make points to be careful
greatly harassed. The empress Theodora of minute accuracy, and therefore of entire
warmly encouraged the undertaking and con- fairness, and his references often want cor-
sulted Justinian about it, who became inter- rection. These volumes were reviewed by C.
ested but objected to Julian as a Monophysite, Martha in the Revue des deux mondes for Mar.
and named another instead, whilst Theodora 1867, vol. Ixviii. pp. 137-169, who paints the
persisted in favouring Julian. John of emperor more favourably. In German J F. .

Ephesus describes fully the rival missions and A. Mijcke, Flavius Claudius J ulianus : nach
the triumph of the empress's schemes. Julian den Quellen (Gotha, 1867 and 1869, 2 parts)
reached the Nubian court first, won over the is the most complete modern account. Fr.
king and secured the rejection of the emperor's Rode, Geschichte der Reaction Kaiser Julians
envoy when he arrived. Thus the Nubians gegen die christliche Kirche (Jena, 1877) a ;

were gained to the Monophysite creed and to useful study, and generally very accurate,
the jurisdiction of Theodosius. After labour- paying proper attention to chronology. The
ing there two years Julian placed Theodore, a writer takes up something of the same position
Thebaid bishop, in charge and returned to Con- as Keim does in his essay on Constantine's
stantinople, where he soon afterwards died. —
conversion striving after fairness towards
For the subsequent history of the mission see the church, without accepting its doctrines.
LONGINUS. [T.W.D.] He admires Julian's books against the Chris-
Julianus (103), Flavius Claudius, emperor, tians as anticipating the line of modern critical
JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 581
theology in many points, pp. 102, 103 ;
cf. Such teaching doubtless fed the naturally
p. 32, n. 10. dreamy temperament of his pupil. Julian
tells us that from a child he had a strange
§ I. Early years Julian as a Christian
of
desire of gazing at the sun, and that he loved
(a.d. 331-351)- § Conversion to heathenism
2.
to spend a clear night in looking fixedly at the
35I-355- § 3- Julicin as Caesar from
Nov. 6,
moon and stars, so that he almost gained the
355 to Nov. 3, 361. § 4. Residence at Con- character of an astrologer (Jul. Or. iv. ad
stantinople as Augustus, Nov. 3, 361 to May,
May regem Solem ad init. cf. the fable. Or. vii.
§ 5. Journey through Asia Minor,
;
362.
p. 229, in which he speaks of himself as en-
to July, 362. § 6. Residence at Antioch,
trusted by Zeus to the sun's guardianship).
July, 362 to March 5, 363. § 7. Persian cam-
These pleasant days of freedom were
paign and death, March 5 to June 27, 363.
brought to an abrupt conclusion by the com-
§ I.Early Years of Julian as a Christian mand of Constantius. The death of his rela-
(a.d. 331-351). —
Flavius Claudius Julianus tive Eusebius (in 342) deprived Julian of a
when he was about 11
was the youngest son of Julius Constantius, powerful protector,
the half-brother of Constantine the Great. years old and soon after (probably in 343 or
;

His mother, Basilina, was of the noble family 344) the emperor recalled Gallus from exile,
of the Anicii, and daughter of Julianus the and sent the two brothers to the distant
praetorian prefect, whose name was given to palace of Macellum in Cappadocia. Here for
her son. Julian was born at Constantinople six years they were kept under surveillance,
in the latter part of a.d. 331, the year after with no lack of material comforts, but apart
the dedication of the new capital. from young men of their own age and with
Upon the death of Constantine in May 337, only the society of their slaves (Greg. Naz. Or.
and the accession of his three sons, there was iii. p. 58 B Julian, ad Aih, p. 271 c).
;
Their
a general massacre of the male branches of seclusion was only once broken by a visit
the younger line of the Flavian family de- from Constantius (Jul. ad Ath. p. 274, prob-
scended from Constantius Chlorus and his ably in 347, see laws of the Cod. Theod. in
second wife Theodora. In this tragedy there this year). Masters and teachers were not
perished the father and eldest brother of wanting, especially of that form of Arianism
Julian, his paternal uncle, his cousins the to which Constantius was devoted and ;

Caesars Delmatius and Hanniballian, and Julian now, if not before, made a considerable
four other members of the family. J ulian and verbal acquaintance with the Bible, an
his elder half-brother Gallus, who was sick acquaintance which frequently appears in
of an illness which was expected to be mortal, his writings. He and Gallus were admitted
were alone preserved, by the compassion or to the office of Reader in the church a proof —
the policy of Constantius {cf. Socr. H. E. iii. that he had been baptized, though no mention
i; Greg. Naz. Or. iii. p. 58 b. Julian, ad of his baptism is recorded. They interested
S. P. Q. Athen. p. 270 c, gives the list of those themselves zealously in the buildins of chapels
who perished, and ascribes their deaths to over the relics of certain martyrs (Greg. Naz.
Constantius, who he says wished at first to Or. iii. p. 58 Soz. v. 2). The success of
;

slay both himself and Gallus). Julian is said Gallus in this building and the ill-success of
to have owed his life to the interference of Julian was remarked at the time, and was
Mark, bp. of Arethusa, who gave him sanc- (afterwards, at any rate) considered as an
tuary in a church (Greg. Naz. Or. iii. p. 80 c). omen of his apostasy (Greg. Naz. I.e. p. 59).
The boy was taken charge of by his mother's In the spring of 351 Constantius felt himself
family, and his education conducted under the forced by the burden of empire to take a col-
direction of the Arian Eusebius, bp. of Nico- league, and Gallus was appointed Caesar.
media, who was distantly related to him Julian with difficulty was permitted to leave
(Amm. xxii. 9. 4 cf. Soz. v. 2).
;
When Macellum, and seems to have returned for a
Eusebius was translated in 388 to the see of short time to Constantinople there he studied ;

Constantinople Julian probably went with grammar with Nicocles, and rhetoric with
him, and attended the schools of that city Hecebolius then a zealous Christian (Socr.
(cf. Libanius, eVird^ios, ed. Reiske, i. p. 525 H. E. iii. i). Constantius, fearing lest his
;

Julian, Ep. 58; and Rode, Die Reaction presence in the capital might lead to his
Julians, p. 22, n. 10). His constant attendant becoming too popular, ordered him to remove
and guardian was his mother's slave Mardonius, to Nicomedia (Liban. Epitaph, p. 526, irpca(pu-
whose influence evidently had great power in vr}TiK6$. p. 408). Hecebolius exacted a promise
moulding the character and tastes of his from his pupil that he would not attend the
pupil, and who insisted strongly on a staid and lectures of the famous heathen sophist Li-
perhaps rather pedantic demeanour (Liban. banius Julian kept his promise, perhaps
;

I.e. ;Jul. Misopogon, pp. 351 seq. Mlicke, fearing to excite suspicion by outward inter-
;

in his Julianus nach den Quellen, zweite Ab- course with a chief partisan of the old re-
theilung, pp. 6 and 9, makes a curious blunder ligion, but contented himself with a study of
in supposing that Juhan disliked Mardonius). the written lectures of the master (Liban. /.c.
Though educating him only for a private posi- 526 seq. Libanius does not name Hecebolius,
tion, he set before him a high standard, and but the description seems to point to him :

particularly held up to his imitation the names Sievers, Libanius, p. 54, n. 5, supposes Nicocles
and characters of " Plato, Socrates, Aristotle, to be meant). Others, however, in Nicomedia
and Theophrastus " (Misop. p. 353 b). He besides Libanius attracted the attention of
kept him from the theatre and the circus, and the young prince. He here learnt to know
taught him rather to love the Homeric de- some of the more mystical of the heathen
scriptions of Phaeacia and Demodocus and party, to whom paganism was still a reality
Calypso's isle, and the cave of Circe (ib. 351 d). and the gods living beings, visions of whom
682 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS
were to be seen by night and whose power the wonder which had taken place. But do
still worked signs and wonders. " He is sent not you wonder at anything of this kind, just
to the city of Nicomedes," says Libanius, as I also through the purifying effects of
" as a place of less importance than Con- reason conceive it is nothing of great import-
stantinople. But this was the beginning ance. |' Julian (says Eunapius) hearing this,
of the greatest blessings both to himself and exclaimed, " Farewell, and keep to your
the world. For there was there a spark of the books, if you will ;
you have revealed to me
mantic art still smouldering, which had with the man I was in search of " (Eunapius,
difficulty escaped the hands of the impious. Vita Maximi, pp. 48-51, ed. Boissonade).
By the light of this " (turning to Julian) It is difficult to believe that Eusebius was not
" you first tracked out what was obscure, and in league with Chrysanthius to bring Julian
learnt to curb your vehement hatred of the under the influence of Maximus. The young
gods, being rendered gentle by the revelations prince hurried off to Ephesus, and there threw
of divination" (Liban. Prosphoneticus, ed. himself with eagerness into the teaching of his
Reiske, i, p. 408). new master, which seems exactly to have
While Julian was thus having his first ex- suited his fantastic temperament. Julian
perience of the inner circle of heathen life, had no practical Christianity to fall back
Gallus met his brother for the last time as he upon. The sense of being watched and sus-^
passed through Bithynia to undertake the pected had sunk deeply into his mind at
government of the East with which Constan- Macellum, and he had learnt to look upon
tius had invested him (Liban. Epitaph, p. 527, Constantius not only as his jailor, but as the
Sia TTji "BiBvvia^). The two brothers, ac- murderer of his nearest relations. This*
cording to Julian's account, corresponded but naturally did not incline him to the religion
rarely after this, and on few subjects (Jul. ad inculcated by Arian or semi-Arian court
Aih. p. 273 ; Liban. Epitaph, p. 530). Gallus, bishops, who probably laid stress upon their
it is said, having reason at a later date to peculiar points of divergence from the ortho-
suspect his brother's change of belief, sent dox faith, and neglected the rest of Christian
the Arian Aetius to confer with him (Philo- theology. Julian therefore conceived of
storgius, 3, 27). Julian, if we may believe Christianity, not as a great body of truth
Libanus, sent Gallus good adviceon his political satisfying the whole man, but as a set of
conduct, which had he followed he might have formulas to be plausibly debated and distin-
preserved both the empire and his life (Liban. guished. On the other hand, he had a real,
ad Jul. COS. p. 376, ed. Reiske). though pedantic, love of Hellenic authors and
§ 2. Conversion to Heathenism (a.d. 351- literature, and a natural dislike to those who
355).— The secret apostasy of Julian was destroyed the ancient monuments of the old
His characteristic dreaminess and love
the result of his residence at Nicomedia, faith.
though it was not completed there. The of mystery found satisfaction in the secret
chief agent in effecting it was the neo- cults to which men like Maximus were
Platonist Maximus of Ephesus, a philosopher, addicted —all the more zealously as public
magician, and political schemer. The fame sacrifice was difficult or dangerous. He was
of the wisdom of Aedesius first attracted J ulian by nature ardent and superstitious, and
to Pergamus, but he, being old and infirm, never fell into good hands. The pagan coterie
recommended him to his pupils, Chrysanthius soon discovered the importance of their con-
and Eusebius. The latter was, or pretended vert, and imbued him with the notion that
to be, an adversary of the theurgic methods of he was the chosen servant of the gods to bring
Maximus, and a follower of the higher and back again Hellenic life and religion. By
more intellectual Platonism, and used to the arts of divination a speedy call to the
finish every lecture by a general warning throne was promised him, and he vowed to
against trickery and charlatans. Julian, restore to the temples if he became emperor.
much struck with this, took the advice of (Libanius, Epitaph, pp. 529 and 565, who
Chrysanthius upon the point, and asked agrees substantially with Socrates, iii. i, p.
Eusebius to explain what he meant. The 168, and Sozomen, v. 2, p. 181 cf. Theod. ;

latter replied by an account of Maximus, iii. i). For the present, however, the ful-
which gave a new edge of the already keen filment of such hopes seemed distant, and
curiosity of Julian. "Some days ago" (he Julian for ten years pretended zeal for Chris-
went on) " he ran in and called our company tianity (Liban. Epitaph, p. 528 Amm. xxii. 5,
;

together to the temple of Hecate, thus making I Socr. iii. i


; ; Soz. v. 2). He had, indeed,
a large body of witnesses against himself. . . good reason to fear the suspicions of his
.

When we came before the goddess and saluted cousin. In 354 Gallus was craftily removed
her, he cried, Sit down, dearest friends, and from his government and executed [Gallus],
'

see what will happen, and whether I am and Julian was apprehended, on obscure
superior to ordinary men.' —
We all sat down, charges (Amm. xv. 2, 7 the charge of
then he burnt a grain of frankincense, and as leaving Macellum without pc-mission seems
he repeated some sort of chant to himself he strange, since the brothers had been released
so far succeeded in the exhibition of his power from their retirement some four j'ears before).
that first the image smiled and then even For seven months he was confined in N. Italy
appeared to laugh. We were confounded at near the court, being removed from place to
the sight, but he said, '
Let none of you be place (Jul. ad Ath. p. 272 d Liban. Epitaph.

;

disturbed at this, for in a moment the torches p. 530; cf. Jul. ad Themist. p. 260 a) an
which the goddess has in her hands will be imprisonment brought to an end by the inter-
lighted up '
—and before he had done speak- vention of the gentle empress Eusebia, who
ing light actually burned in the torches. We procured for him an interview with Constan-
then retired, being amazed and in doubt at tius, and leave to return to his studies (Jul.

JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 583


ad Ath. pp. 272, 274 ; 3, p. 118 b).
Or. At he visited the antiquities under the guidance
first he determined to retire to his mother's of the then Christian bp. Pegasius, who
property in Bithynia, Constantius having delighted him by omitting the sign of the
confiscated all the estates of his father cross in the temples, and otherwise shewing
(Jul. ad Ath. p. 273 Ep. 40, p. 4^7 a, to heathen sympathies (Jul. Ep.
;
78 —
the

lamblichus an interesting letter written 3 letter, first edited by C. Henning, in Hermes,
On his arrival at Milan, Con-
years later, and not concealing his religious vol. ix.).
opinions). He had hardly arrived in Asia stantius was absent, but Julian was well
Minor when the suspicions of Constantius received by the eunuchs of the empress (ad
were aroused by two reports brought by Ath. pp. 274, 275 b). His first impulse was
informers, one of treasonable proceedings at to write to his protectress and implore her
a banquet given by Africanus, the governor to obtain leave for him to return home but ;

of Pannonia Secunda at Sirmium, the other on demanding a revelation from the gods,
of the rising of Silvanus in Gaul (Jul. ad Ath. he received an intimation of their displeasure
p. 273 c, D ; cf. Amm. xv. 3, 7 seq.). The and a threat of disgraceful death if he did so,
first was no doubt connected in his mind with and, in consequence, schooled himself to
Julian, who had just passed through that yield his will to theirs, and to become their
country, and whom he in consequence recalled, instrument for whatever purposes they chose
but on his way back received permission, (ib. pp. 275, 276 cf. Liban. ad Jul. consulem,
;

or rather command, to turn aside into Greece, t. I, p. 378). Constantius soon returned,
a privilege which Eusebia had procured for and determined, under the persevering pres-
him (ad Ath. 273 d Or. 3, p. 1x8 c). He thus sure of his wife and notwithstanding strong
;

could gratify a long-cherished wish of visiting opposition, to give the dignity of Caesar
Athens. The young prince was naturally to his sole remaining relative (Amm. xv. 8, 3 ;

well received by professors and sophists, such Zos. 3, i). On Nov. 6, 355, Julian received
as Prohaeresius and Himerius, then teaching the insignia in the presence of the army at
at Athens. He had a turn for philosophy, Milan, and was given control of the prefec-
and could discourse eagerly, in the modern ture of Gaul (i.e. Spain, Gaul, Britain, and
neo-Platonic fashion, about the descent and Germany), and especially of the defence
the ascent of souls. He was surrounded by a of the frontiers (ad Ath. p. 2,7 y a ;Amm.
swarm of young and old men, philosophers and I.e.). As he drew the unwonted garb around
rhetoricians, and (if we may believe Libanius) him in place of his beloved pallium, he
gained favour as much by his modesty and was heard to mutter the line of Homer, to
gentleness as by the qualities of his intelligence which his wit gave a new shade of meaning :

(Liban. Epitaph, p. 532). Two of the most


"Him purple death and destiny embraced "
distinguished of his familiars among his
fellow-students at this time were the future (Amm. XV. 8, 17). At the same time he
bishops Basil and Gregory Nazianzen, then received, through the management of Eusebia,
as always close and intimate friends. Gre- the emperor's sister Helena as his bride, and
gory, however, seems to have detected some- the gift of a library from the empress herself
thing of his real character he noticed an air (Or. iii. p. 123 d).
; Thus the reconciliation
of wildness and unsteadiness, a wandering of the cousins was apparently complete.
eye, an uneven gait, a nervous agitation of Julian produced a spirited panegyric upon the
the features, an unreasoning and disdainful reign and just actions of Constantius, which
laugh, an abrupt, irregular way of talking, it seems right to assign to this date (Or. 1 ;

which betrayed a mind ill at ease with itself, cf. Spanheim's notes, p. 5). He set out, on
and exclaimed, " What a plague the Roman Dec. I, for his new duties with a small retinue,
empire is breeding God grant I may be a from which almost all his personal followers
!

false prophet " (Or. pp. 161, 162).


! Gre- were carefully excluded (Amm. xv. 8, 17, 18 ;

gory, who had many friends among the Jul. ad Ath. p. 277 B, c). Of his four slaves,
professors, may well have been aware of the one was his only confidant in religious matters,
real state of the young prince's mind, and of an African named Euhemerus (ad Ath. p.
his nightly visits to Eleusis, where he could 277 B ; Eunap. Vita Maximi, p. 54). His
indulge his religious feelings without reserve. physician, Oribasius, who had charge of his
Maximus had introduced him to the hiero- library, was only allowed to accompany him
phant there, a great miracle -worker who was through ignorance of their intimacy (ad Ath.
in league with the heathen party in Asia Minor I.e. ; Eunap. Vita Oribasii, p. 104). He
(Eunapius, Vita Maximi, pp. 52, 53). entered Vienne with great popular rejoicing
§ 3. Julian as Caesar (from Nov. 6, 355, (for the province was hard-pressed by the
to Nov. 3, 361 — death of Constantius). barbarians) and possibly with secret expecta-
About May 355 Julian was permitted to tions amongst the heathen party, which had
go to Athens, but a few months later was been strong in the time of Magnentius. A
summoned again to the court (Jul. ad Ath. blind old woman, learning his name and office
p. 273 d). He left the city in low spirits and as he passed, cried out, "There goes he who
with many tears, and, stretching out his will restore the temples of the gods " (Amm. !

hands to the Acropolis, besought Athena to XV. 8, 22).



save her suppliant an act which, he tells us, During the next five years the young Caesar
many saw him perform (ib. p. 475 a). Those appears as a strenuous and successful general
who did so could hardly have doubted his and a popular ruler. The details of his wars
change of religion, and there were doubtless with the Franks and Alamanns, the Salii
many sympathizers who looked to him as and Chamavi, will be found in Ammianus
the future restorer of the old faith. He first and Zosimus. Perhaps we ought to recollect
crossed the Aegean to Ilium Novum, where that he was his own historian, writing " com-
584 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS
mentaries " (now no longer extant) which 16, 6, dated July 5, 358, from Ariminum).
were no doubt intended to rival those of the The effect upon his conscience of condemning
author of the Gallic War. After an ex- as a public officer what he was secretly prac-
pedition against the Franks in the autumn of tisingmusthavebeen hardening and demoraliz-
357 he wintered for the first time at Paris, ing. For Julian was not without thought on
which became a favourite abode of his. He such subjects. At another time he declared he
gives a well-known description of his (plXr) would rather die than sign the oppressive edict
AovKerla in the Misopogon (pp. 340 seq.). brought him by Florentius (Amm. xvii. 3, 2) ;

His military successes endeared him to both and in his later famous decree against Christian
troops and people. His internal government, professors he writes vehemently of the wicked-
particularly as lightening public burdens, was ness of thinking one thing and teaching another
equally popular. He had specially to contend (Ep. 42).
with the avarice of Florentius, the praetorian In Apr. 360 Constantius ordered the flower
prefect, who desired to increase the capitatio, of the Gallic auxiliaries to be sent to aid him
and who, on Julian's refusal to sign the in his expedition against the Persians (Amm.
indiction, complained of him to Constantius XX. 4). This request produced great irritation
(Amm. xvii. 3, 2, and 5, in 357). Constantius, among men who had enlisted on the under-
while reproving him for discrediting his officer, standing that they were not to be required to
left him a practically free hand, and the tax, cross the Alps —an irritation fomented no
doubt by the friends of Julian, particularly,
which on his entering Gaul was 25 aurei a
head, had been reduced to 7 when he left it is said, by Oribasius (Eunap. Vita Oribasii,

(Amm. xvi. 5, 14 cf. xvii. 3, 6).


;
p. 104). The troops surrounded the palace-
His ambition was to imitate Marcus Aure- at Paris and demanded that their favourite
lius as a philosopher upon the throne, and should take the title of Augustus (ad Ath.
Alexander the Great as a model in warfare p. 284 ;Amm. XX. 4, 14). Julian, according
{ad Themist. p. 253). His table was very to his own account, was quite unprepared for
plainly furnished, and he refused all the such a step, and would not accede till Jupiter
luxuries which Constantius had written down had given him a sign from heaven. This sign
for him as proper for a Caesar's board (Amm. was no doubt the vision of the Genius of the
xvi. 5, 3). His bed was a mat and a rug of Ernpire, who declared that he had long been
skins, from which he rose at midnight, and, waiting on his threshold and was now unwill-
after secret prayer to Mercury, addressed him- ing to be turned away from it. Yet he
self first to public business and then to warned him (so Julian told his intimates) that
literature. He studied philosophy first, then his residence with him would in no case
poetry, rhetoric, and history, making himself be for long (Amm. xx. 5, 10 cf. Lib. ad Jul.
;

also fairly proficient in Latin. His chamber COS. p. 386). We have no reason, however,
was ordinarily never warmed and one very
; to think that Julian had any real hesitation,
cold night, at Paris, he was nearly suffocated except as to the opportuneness of the moment.
by some charcoal in a brazier, but erroneously When he came down to address the troops, he
attributed it to the dampness of the room still appeared reluctant, but the enthusiasm of
(Misopogon, p. 341). All this attracted the the soldiers would take no denial, and he was
people, but was not agreeable to many of raised in (Jallic fashion upon a shield, and
the courtiers. Julian knew that he was hastily crowned with a gold chain which a
surrounded by disaffected officials and other dragoon (draconarius) tore from his own
spies upon his conduct, and continued to accoutrements. He promised the accustomed
conceal his religious sentiments, and to act donative (Amm. xx. 4, 18), which the friends
cautiously towards his cousin. During his of Constantius, it would seem, secretly tried
administration of Gaul he produced another to outdo by bribes (ad Ath. p. 285 a). The
panegyric upon Constantius, and one upon discovery of their intrigue only raised the
Eusebia, though the exact occasion of neither popular enthusiasm to a higher pitch, and
can be determined (Or. 2 and 3). In these Julian felt strong enough to treat with his
orations Julian, though indulging to the full cousin. He dispatched an embassy with a
in classical parallels and illustrations, takes letter declining to send the Gallic troops, who
care to hide his change of religion. He speaks (he declared) positively refused to go, and
even of his prayers to God for Constantius, could not be spared with safety but he ;

naturally indeed and not in a canting way offered some small corps of barbarian auxili-
(Or. 3, p. 118 d). Nor did he hesitate to join aries. He related the action of the army in
with him in issuing a law denouncing a capital proclaiming him Augustus, but said nothing
penalty against those who sacrifice to or wor- of his own wish to bear the title. As a com-
ship idols (Cod. Theod. xvi. 10, 6, Apr. 356), promise he proposed that Constantius should
in repressing magic and all kinds of divination still appoint the praetorian prefect, the chief
with very severe edicts (ib. ix. 16, 4-6, in 357 governor of that quarter of the empire, but
and 358), in punishing renegade Christians that all lesser offices should be under his
who had become Jews (ib. xvi. 8, 7), and in own administration (ib. d, and for particulars,
granting new privileges to the church and Amm. XX. 8, 5-17), who gives the substance of
clergy, and regulating those already given the letter at length). But to these public and
(ib. xvi. 2, 13-16; the last as late as Mar. open requests he added a threatening and bitter
361). To have hinted at dislike to any of these private missive, which had the effect, whether
measures would, indeed, have aroused at once intentionally or not, of rendering his negotia-
the strongest suspicions. One of the edicts tions abortive (Amm. I.e.).
against magic, which threatens torture for Such a state of things could only end in war,
every kind of divination, seems almost person- but neither party was in a hurry to precipitate
ally directed against Julian (Cod. Theod. ix. it. In Vienne Julian celebrated the fifth
JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 585
anniversary of his appointment, and appeared monuments prove that many pagans of position
for the first time in the jewelled diadem continued the tauroboUum till the end of the
which had become the symbol of imperial 4th cent, (see the inscriptions in Wilmanns,
dignity (Amm. xxi. i, 4). Meanwhile both Exempla Inscr. Lat. 107-126).
Eusebia and Helena had been removed by Such secret incidents preceded Julian's
death, and with them almost the last links public declaration of his change of religion.
which united the cousins. Julian still kept At Naissus or Sirmium he threw off the
up the pretence of being a Christian. At mask, and professed himself openly a heathen.
Epiphany, 361, he kept the festival solemnly Of his first public sacrifice he wrote with
and even ostentatiously, joining in the public exultation to his friend Maximus :
" We
prayers and devotions (ib. 2). He witnessed worship the gods openly, and the greatest part
calmly the triumphant return of St. Hilary of the troops who accompanied me profess the
after his exile, and permitted the Gallic bishops true religion. We have acknowledged our
to hold a council at Paris (S. Hilarii, Frag. Hist. gratitude to the gods in many hecatombs.
PP- 1353. 1354)- His name also appears, after The gods command me to consecrate myself
that of Constantius, attached to a law issued to their service with all my might, and most
on Mar. i at Antioch, giving privileges to Chris- readily do I obey them. They promise us
"
tian ascetics. But all this was mere dissimula- great returns for our toils if we are not remiss
tion for the sake of popularity. In secret he was (Ep. 38, p. 415 c).
anxiously trying, byall possible heathen means, Now came the news of his cousin's sudden
to divine the future (Amm. xxi. i, 6 seq.). He death at Mopsucrene, at the foot of Mount
sent in particular for the hierophant of Eleusis, Taurus, on Nov. 3, and Julian learnt that he
with whose aid he performed rites known to was accepted without opposition as the
themselves alone {Eunaip. Vita Maxitni, p. 53; successor designated by his dying breath, a
of. Amm. xxi. 5, i, " placata ritu secretiori report of which we cannot guarantee the truth
Bellona"). (Amm. xxii. 2, 6).
The irritation against Constantius was § 4. Julian as Augustus at Constantinople
further increased by an arrogant letter, (from Nov. 3, 361, to May 362).
addressed of course to the Caesar Julian, hastened to Constantinople, through the
— Julian

requiring his immediate submission and pass of Succi and by Philippopolis and
merely promising him his life. Julian, on Heraclea, entering the Eastern capital amid
receiving this, uttered an exclamation which general rejoicings on Dec. 11. He conducted
betrayed his religion :
" He would rather the funeral of Constantius with the usual
commit himself and his life to the gods than honours; laying aside all the imperial insignia,
to Constantius " (Zos. iii. 9, 7). The except the purple, and marching in the pro-
moment seemed now come for action. In a cession, touching the bier with his hands
speech to the soldiers in which he referred in (Liban. Epitaph, p. 512, cf. Greg. Naz. Or. 5,
ambiguous language to the will of the God of 16, 17, pp. 157, 158). Constantius was buried
— —
heaven " arbitrium dei caelestis " he called near his father in the Church of the Apostles,
upon them to take the oath of allegiance and but whether Julian entered it is not stated.
follow him across the Alps. He spoke in Almost his next act was to appoint a special
general terms of occupying Illyricum and commission under the presidency of Satur-
Dacia, and then deciding what was to be ninus Sallustius Secundus (to be distinguished
done (Amm. xxi. 5). Having thus secured from the prefect of the Gauls) to bring to
the Western provinces, he naade a rapid and justice the principal supporters of the late
successful passage through N. Italy, receiving government. Julian himself avoided taking
its submission. He reached Sirmium without part in it, and allowed no appeal from its
opposition, having ordered the different divi- decisions. The commission met at Chaicedon,
sions of his army to concentrate there. Then and acted with excessive rigour.
he took and garrisoned the important pass of Julian next turned his attention to the
Succi (Ssulu Derbend) on the Balkans, between palace, with its swarm of needless and over-
Sardica and Philippopolis, thus securing the paid officials, eunuchs, cooks, and barbers,
power to descend into Thrace. For the time who battened on bribes and exactions. All
he established his quarters at Naissus (Nish), these he swept away, to the general satisfaction
and awaited further news. From there he (Amm. xxii. 4 ; Liban. Epit. p. 565).
wrote to the senate of Rome against Constan- Towards Christians he adopted a policy of
tius, and in self-defence to the Athenians, toleration, though desiring nothing more
Lacedemonians, and Corinthians (Zos. iii. 10). keenly than the humiliation of the Church.
The Athenian letter was possibly entrusted His object was to set sect against sect by
to the Eleusinian hierophant, who returned extending equal licence to all (cf. Amm. xxii.
home about this time. It was perhaps also 5). He issued an edict allowing all bishops
under his guidance that Julian underwent the exiled under Constantius to return, and
secret ceremonies of initiation described by restoring their confiscated property (Socr. iii.
Gregory Nazianzen {Or. 4, 52-56, pp. 101-103). I, p. 171). On the other hand, the extreme
According to common report, he submitted to Arian, Aetius, as a friend of Gallus, received
the disgusting bath of blood, the taurobolium a special invitation to court [Ep. 31). A letter
or criobolium, through which the worshippers " to Basil," seemingly of the same date, and
of Mithra and Cybele sought to procure eternal of similar purport, may possibly have been
life. Julian's object, it is said, was not only addressed to St. Basil of Caesarea (Ep. 12 ;

to gain the favour of the gods, but also to De Broglie assumes this, t. iv. pp. 133, 235, n.).
wash away all defilement from previous contact To Caesarius, a court physician of high repute
with the Christian mysteries. This miserable and the brother of Gregory, Julian shewed
story is yet a very credible one. Existing great attention, and strove for his conversion.
586 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS
He even entered into a public discussion on He himself acted as attendant, slaughterer,
religion with him, and was much mortilSed by and priest, and had a passion for all the details
the ill success of his rhetoric (Greg. Naz. Ep. of heathen ritual (Liban. Epitaph- p. 564, ad
6 ; Oral. vii. 11-14). The Donatists, Nova- Jul. COS. pp. 394 seq. Greg. Oral. 5, 22, p. 161
;
;

tianists, and perhaps some extreme Arians de Broglie, iv. pp. 126, 127). No previous
were not loth to appear before the new emperor had so highly prized his office of
emperor, who sought to destroy unanimity by pontifex maximus, which Julian valued as
extending free licence to all Christian sects, equal to all the other imperial prerogatives
but there is no trace of any important Catholic (xaip€i Ka'XoijfjLeuos lepevs oi'x •^rroi' ij ^acriKeiji,
leader falling into the snare. In the same spirit I.iban. ad Jul. cos. p. 394). In this
he ordered Eleusius, Arian bp. of Cyzicus, to capacity he apparently attempted to introduce
restore the ruined church of the Novatianists something of the episcopal regimen into the
within two months (Socr. ii. 38, p. 147 iii. ; loose system of the heathen priesthood, him-
n cf. Ep. 52, p. 436 a).
; Toleration was self occupying the papal or patriarchal chair
also extended to the Jews, from a real though (cf. Greg. Or. 4, ii.p. 138). Thus he appointed
imperfect sympathy. Their ritual seemed to Theodorus chief priest of Asia and Arsacius
Julian a point of contact with Hellenism, and of Galatia, with control over inferior priests ;

with their rejection of an Incarnate Saviour the hierophant of Eleusis was set over Greece
he was quite in harmony. He approved of and Lydia, and CalUxene made high priestess
their worship of the Creator, but could not of Pessinus. {Ep. 63 Theodora is early in his
tolerate their identification of Him with the reign, and the long Fragmentum Epistolae may
God Whose especial people they claimed to be be a sequel to it Ep. 49 Arsacio is later, as~,

;

and Whom he, in his polytheism, imagined to is that to Callixene, Ep. 21. The appoint-
be an inferior divinity (S. Cyril, in Jul. iv. pp. ments of the hierophant and of Chrysanthius
115, 141, 201, 343, 3.'i4, ed. Spanheim). are described by Eunapius, Vita Maximi,
The great task which lay nearest his heart pp. 54. 57-) As chief pontiff he issued some
was the restoration of heathenism to its former remarkable instructions to his subordinates,
influence and power, and its rehabilitation some of which have been preserved. His
both in theory and practice. He composed " pastoral letters," as they may properly be
an oration for the festival of the sun, no doubt called, to the chief priests of Asia and Galatia,
that celebrated on Dec. 25, as the " Natalis shew a striking insight into the defects of
Solis invicti," inconnexion with the winter heathenism considered as a religious ideal, and
solstice. Though Constantinople had never a clear attempt to graft upon it the more
been a heathen city, or polluted with public popular and attractive features of Christianity.
heathen ceremonies, he called this " the He regrets several times that Christians and
festival which the imperial city celebrates with Jews are more zealous than Gentiles, espe-
annual sacrifices" (Oral. 4, p. 131 d). The cially in charity to the poor (Ep. 49, pp. 430,
main body of the oration is occupied with 431 ;in Frag. p. 305 he refers to the influence
the obscure theory of the triple hierarchy of of the Agape and similar institutions. In
worlds the /coo-yuos i'07?r6t or " intelUgible
:
Ep. 63, p. 453 D, he describes the persistency
world," the Kdafios voepds or " intelligent," of the Jews in abstaining from swine's flesh,
and the Kdafiot al(T0r]T6s the " visible " or etc.). He promises large endowments of com
" phenomenal." for distribution to the indigent and the sup-
In each of these three worlds
there is a central principle, who is the chief port of the priesthood and orders the ;

object of worship and the fountain of power estabUshment of guest-houses and hospitals
;

the Sun king being the centre of the inter- (^ivoboxfta, Karayibyia ^^vuv Kal Trr&jxdv,
mediate or " intelligent " world. This ideal Soz. v. 16, Jul. Ep. 49, p. 430 c). In the very
god was evidently a kind of counterpoise in spirit of the Gospel he insists on the duty of
Julian's theology to the Word of God, the giving clothing and food even to enemies and
prisoners {Frag. pp. 290-291). " Who was
mediator of the Christian Trinity (m^o"'? "s.
ever impoverished," he writes, " by what he
oiiK dirb tQ)v S.Kp(j}v KpaOdtra, reXeta 5^ Kai
gave to his neighbours ? I, for my part, as
djiuyr]s d<f)' cJXwi' ticv 6fu)v e/xcpavQiv re Kal
often as I have been liberal to those in want,
d4>av(ov Kal alffdriTuiv Kai vorjTwi', 7; tov ^aaiKiw^ have received back from them many times as
]i. 139 b, and
'HX/oii votph. Kal TrdyKaXo^ ovala. much, though I am but a bad man of business ;

tQu voepCjv OeOiv pJaos iv /tttVois Teray/n^j/os and I never repented of my liberality " (Frag.
Kara wavrolav fiecroTrjTa. Cf. Naville, Jttl. I'A. p. 290 c). Elsewhere he enters into minute
et sa philosophic du polytheisme, pp. 102 seq.). details on the conduct and habits of the
This oration should be read in connexion with priesthood. He fixes the number of sacrifices
the fifth oration " on the Mother of the Gods," to be offered by day and night, the deportment
which he delivered at her festival, apparently to be observed within and without the tem-
at the vernal equinox, and while still at Con- ples, the priest's dress, his visits to his friends,
stantinople. It is chiefly an allegorical his secret meditations and his private reading.
platonizing interpretation of the myth of Attis The priest must peruse nothing scurrilous or
and Cybele, very different from the modern indecent, such as Archilochus, Hipponax, or
reference of it to the circle of the seasons. the old comedy nothing sceptical like
;

In the practice of all superstitious cere- Pyrrho and Epicurus no novels and love-
;

monies, whether public or mystic, Julian was tales but history and sound philosophy like
;

enthusiastic to the point of ridiculous osten- Pythagoras, Plato, Aristotle, and the Stoics ;

tation. He turned his palace into a temple. and must learn by heart the hymns to the
Every day he knew better than the priests gods, especially those sung in his own temple
themselves '^wh at festival was in the pagan (Frag. pp. 300-301 cf. Ep. 56, to Ecdicius,
;

calendar, and what sacrifice was required. ordering him to train boys for the temple
;

JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 587


choirs). He must avoid theatres and taverns, Socr. iii. 13 ; Liban. pro Aristophane, pp. 435,
and all public resorts where he is likely to hear 436, and Ep. 17 Greg. Naz. Or. iv. 62, p. 105
; ;

or see anything vulgar or indecent {Fra^. Jul. Ep. 78 ; cf. Sievers, Libanius, p. 105.
p. 304 B, c Ep. 49, p. 430 b). Not only On the readiness of many of these converts to
;

priests, but the sons of priests, are forbidden to return to the church cf. Asterius of Amasea,
attend the " venationes " or spectacles of wild Horn, in Avaritiam, p. 227, and Horn. xix. in
beasts {Frag. p. 304 d). The true priest is to Psalm. V. p. 433, Migne.) But the number
be considered superior, at least in the temple, of these new converts was less than might
to any public official, and to be honoured as the perhaps have been expected from the divided
intercessor between gods and men {Frag. state of the church and the low standard of
p. 296 B, c ; cf. the edict to the Byzantine court Christianity under Constantius. It was
against applauding himself in the Tychaeum, far less, no doubt, than Julian's sanguine
Ep. 64). He, however, who does not obey the expectations. Caesarius, as we have seen,
rules laid down for his conduct, is to be stood firm, and so did three prominent officers
removed from his office {Frag. p. 297 ; Ep. in the army, destined to be his successors in
49, p. 430 b) ;

Julian's suspending a priest for three months (Valentinian



and we possess an edict of the empire Jovian, Valentinian, and Valens
was banished, Soz. vi. 6 ;

for injury done to a brother priest {Ep. 62). Philost. vii. 7 cf. Greg. Or. iv. 65, p. 106).
;

Further, " he intended ," says Gregory {Or. The steadfastness of the court and the army
iv. Ill, _p. 138), "to establish schools in all was indeed sorely tried. The monogram of
cities, and professorial chairs of different Christ was removed from the Labarum, and
grades, and lectures on heathen doctrines, replaced by the old S.P.Q.R. and heathen
;

both in their bearings on moral practice and symbols againbegantoappearupon the coinage,
in explanation of their abstruser mysteries." and upon statues and pictures of the emperor,
Of such lectures, no doubt, he wished his own so that it was difficult to pay him respect
orations on the Sun and the Mother of the without appearing to bow to an idol. (Greg.
Gods to be examples. Besides this imitation Or. iv. 80, 81, pp. 116, 117; Socr. vi. 17. Socrates
of Christian sermons and lectures, he desired to probably somewhat exaggerates. The ob-
set up religious communities of men and scure letter of Julian to a painter, Ep. 65,
women, vowed to chastity and meditation appears to reprimand him for painting him
(ayvevTripid re Kal TrapOeuevfiara Kai (ppovri- without his customary images in his hands or
tTTripia, cf. Soz. V. 16). These were institu- by his side.) Julian even condescended to a
tions familiar to Oriental heathenism, but out trick to entrap a number of his soldiers, prob-
of harmony with the old Greek spirit of which ably of the praetorian guard, by persuading
Julian professed himself so ardent an admirer. them to offer incense when receiving a dona-
He was, indeed, unconsciously less a disciple tive from his hands (Soz. v. 17 Greg. Or iv. ;

of Socrates than of the Hindu philosophy, a 83, 84, pp. 118, 119 cf. Rode, p. 62).
; Some
champion of Asian mysticism against Euro- of the soldiers, on discovering the snare from
pean freedom of thought. the jeers of their companions, protested loudly
Julian used not only his literary and per- and threw down their money and Julian, in
;

sonal influence and pontifical authority in consequence, dismissed all Christians from his
favour of the worship of the gods, but also his bodyguard (Greg. I.e. Socr. iii. 13).
; Many
imperial power. The temples where stand- common soldiers were doubtless less firm, and
ing were reopened, or rebuilt at the expense conformed, at least outwardly, but the sub-
of those who had destroyed them, and received sequent election of Jovian by the army of
back their estates, which had been to some Persia looks as if their conviction was not
extent confiscated under Constantius (Amm. deep). (Liban. ad Jul. eos. Jan. i, 363, p. 399 ;

xxii. 4, 3, " pasti ex his quidam templorum Greg. Or. iv. 64, 65, p. 106 St. Chrys. de
;

spoliis " ; Liban. Epitaph, p. 564, describes the Babyla contra Julianum, § 23, vol. ii. pp. 686,
general plan of restitution ; cf. his Ep. 624, 687, ed. Gaume cf. Sievers, Libanius, pp.
;

TTocrt Kr)pi'i^as KOfxi^ecrdai ra avru')'.) A friend of 107-109). It was pretty well understood
the gods was as a friend of the emperor's, their that no Christian official would be promoted
enemy became his (Liban. I.e. and more strongly to high civil functions, while converts like
p. 617). Yet direct persecution was forbidden Felix and Elpidius were. Julian is reported
and milder means of conversion practised {Ep. 7 to have stated in an edict that the Christian
to Artabius ; Liban. 564). Julian even bore law forbade its subjects to wield the sword of
with some patience the public attacks of the justice, and therefore he could not commit
blind and aged Maris, Arian bp. of Chalcedon, the government of provinces to them. Such
who called him an " impious atheist," while he a sentiment would be characteristic, and this
was sacrificing in the Tychaeum of Constanti- edict is probably an historical fact (Rufin. i.
nople. Julian replied only with a scoff at his 32), but perhaps did not extend to persons
infirmity " Not even your Galilean God will heal already in office or in the army, unless they
:

you." Maris retorted, " I thank my God for my offered resistance to the course of events.
blindness which prevents me from seeing your Other measures were aimed at the clergy as a
apostasy," a rebuke which the emperor ignored body, and intended to reduce the church
(Soz. V. 4, where we must of course read rvxaiv generally to the position which it held before
for reixicij, cf. Jul. Ep. 64, Byzantinis). Not a Constantine. The church suffered as much
few persons of position apostatized, among perhaps as private owners of property by the
them Julian's maternal uncle Julianus, his order to restore the temples and refund temple
former tutor Hecebolius, the officials Felix, lands. The clergy and widows who had re-
Modestus, and Elpidius, and the former bp. ceived grants from the municipal revenues
of Ilium Novum, Pegasius, all of whom were were deprived of them and obliged to repay
rewarded by promotion. (Philost. vii. 10 their previous receipts —
an act of great in-

588 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS


justice (Soz. V. 5). The church lost its power shewed a further advance in intolerance and in-
of inheritance, and its ministers the privileges consistency. Julian determined to take the
of making wills and of jurisdiction in certain control of education into the hands of the state.
cases (Jul. Ep. 52, p. 437 a, Bostrenis). But On June 17, while ew yow^e between Constanti-
perhaps what was felt most of all was the loss nople and Antioch, he issued an edict, promul-
of immunity from personal taxation and from gated at Spoleto, to the Western empire, on
the service of the curiae or municipal councils, June 28. This document said nothing about
who were held responsible for the taxes of Christian teachers, but requiredfor allprofessors
their district. A
short decree issued on Mar. and schoolmasters a diploma of approval from
13, 362, made all persons, formerly privileged the municipal council in every city before they
as Christians, liable to the office of decurion might teach. This was to be forwarded to
(Cod. Theod. xii. i, 50). We
may readily himself for counter-signature (Cod. Theod.
admit that the church would have been safer xiii. 3, 5). This power of veto was no doubt
and holier without some of its privileges, aimed at Christian teachers and another edict, ;

which bound it too closely to the state. But supposed to have been issued soon after, struck
to abolish them all at once, without warning, an open and violent blow at the church. This
was a very harsh proceeding, which caused may have been issued even earlier it can ;

much suffering, and Ammianus only spoke the hardly have been much later (Ep. 42, with no
general opinion when he censured the conduct title or date). It declares that "only a cheat and
of his hero (Amm. xxv. 4, 21, cf. xxii. 9, 12). a charlatan will teach one thing while he thinks
A Greek decree of apparently the same date, another. All teachers, especially those who in-
addressed Byzantines —
to the i.e. the citizens of struct the young, ought not to oppose the,
.

Constantinople— extended
. .

this measure to all common belief and try to insinuate their own.
privileged persons whatsoever, except those who . .Now Homer, Hesiod, Demosthenes, Hero-
.

had " done public service in the metropolis " dotus, Thucydides, Isocrates, and Lysias all
i.e. probably, those who had as consuls or founded their learning upon the gods, and con-
praetors exhibited costly games for the public sidered themselves dedicated to Hermes or the
amusement (Ep. 11) ;a later decree also Muses. It is monstrous, then, that those who
confirming the " chief physicians" in their im- teach these writers should dishonour their gods.
munities (Coi^.T/j^oti. xiii.3-4, nearly equivalent I do not wish them to change their religion that
to Ep. 25*). they may retain their offices, but I give them
In the spring of this year, while he was still the choice, either not to teach, or, if they
at Constantinople, the affairs of the church of prefer to do so, to teach at the same time that
Alexandria attracted Julian's attention, and none of these authors is guilty of folly or
led to the first decided step which violated his impiety in his doctrine about the gods. . . .

policy of personal toleration. The intruded If teachers think these authors which they
Arian bishop, George of Cappadocia, had made expound wise, and draw philosophy from
himself equally detested by pagans and them, let them emulate their religion. If they
Catholics. On Dec. 24 he was foully mur- think them in error, let them go to the
dered by the former (without any intervention churches of the Galileans and expound Mat-
of Christians) in a riot. Dracontius, master thew and Luke, who forbid our sacrifices. I
of the mint, who had overturned an altar wish, however, the ears and tongues of you
recently set up in his office, and Diodorus, who Christians may be regenerated,' as you would
'

wasbuilding a church and gave offence to pagan say, by these writings which I value so much."
prejudices by cutting short the hair of some Christians considered the decree practically
boys employed under him, were both torn to to exclude them from the schools. For Julian
pieces in the same sedition (Amm. xxii. 11, 9). expressly orders all teachers to insist on the
Julian wrote an indignant reprimand to the religious of their authors.
side Grammar-
people, but inflicted no punishment (Ep. 10, schools were to become seminaries of pagan-
Amm. I.e. cf. Julian's letter to Zeno, Ep. 45).
; ism. No indifferent or merely philological
On Feb. 22 St. Athanasius was again seatedupon teaching was to be allowed. No sincere
his throne amid the rejoicing of the people. Christian parents therefore could send their
Julian saw in him an enemy he could not afford sons to such schools. A
quotation given by
to tolerate. He wrote to the Alexandrians (ap- Gregory, as if from this decree, is not found in
parently at once), saying that one so often the text of the edict as we have it (Or. 4, 102,
banished by royal decree ought to have awaited p. 132). Perhaps he may be quoting some
special permission to return that in allowing
; other of Julian's writings, ^.g. the books against
the exiled bishops to come back he didnot mean the Christians. The words are characteristic :

to restore them to their churches Athanasius,;


" Literature and the Greek language are
he feared, had resumed his " episcopal naturally ours, who are worshippers of the
throne." to the great disgust of " god-fearing gods illiterate ignorance and rusticity are
;

Alexandrians." He therefore ordered him to yours, whose wisdom goes no further than to
leave the city at once, on pain of greater say believe.' " The last taunt is borrowed
'

punishment (Ep. 26). Athanasius braved the from Celsus (Origen, c. Celsum, i. 9).
emperor's wrath and did not leave Alexandria, Two celebrated men gave up
their posts
except, perhaps, for a time. Public feeling rather than submit to this edict Prohaeresius —
was with him, and an appeal was apparently of Athens, whom many thought superior to
forwarded to the emperor to reconsider his Libanius, and C. Marius Victorinus of Rome.
sentence. (Ep. 51, written probably in Oct. Julian had already made overtures to the
362, speaks of Athanasius as ^in^r}TovfjL(vos former (Ep. 2), and even offered to except him
by the Alexandrians.) The sequel of this from the action of the edict but he refused ;

appeal will appear later. to be put in a better condition than his fellows
Another change of policy about this time (Hieron. Chron. sub anno 2378 cf. Eunap. ;
JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, PLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 589
Prohaerestus, p. 92 ; Himerius, p. 95 and
; put to death by red-hot irons (Boll. Mar. 22 ;
Frag. 76, p. 544, ed. Boissonade). Victorinus also in Ruinart, Acta Mart. Sincera, p. 599;
was equally famous at Rome, and his con- Soz. p. 11). [Basilius of Ancyra.] Julian
stancy was a subject of just glory to the left Ancyra, according to the same Acts, on
church (see the interesting account of his June 29, and soon after was met by a crowd
conversion, etc. in August. Conf. viii. 2-5). of litigants, some clamouring for a restoration
Attempts were made to supply the place of of their property, others complaining that they
classical literature by putting historical and were unjustly forced into the curia, others
doctrinal portions of Scripture into Greek accusing their neighbours of treason. Julian
prose and verse. Thus the elder Apollinaris shewed no leniency to the second class, even
wrote 24 books in hexameters, which were to when they had a strong case, being deter-
form a substitute for Homer, on the Biblical mined to allow as few immunities as possible.
history up to the reign of Saul, and produced To the rest he was just and fair, and an amusing
tragedies, lyrics, and even comedies on Bibli- instance is recorded of the summary way he
cal subjects (Soz. v. 18). The younger Apol- disposed of a feeble charge of treason (Amm.
linaris reduced the writings of the N.T. into xxii. 9, 12 cf. XXV. 4, 21).
;

the form of Platonic dialogues (Socr. iii. 16) ;


In Cappadocia his ill-humour was roused
and some of the works of Victorinus in Latin, by finding almost all the people Christian.
such as the poem on the seven Maccabean " Come, I beseech you," he writes to the
brothers, and various hymns, may have been philosopher Aristoxenus, " and meet me at
written with the same aim (cf. Teuffel, Gesch. Tyana, and shew us a genuine Greek amongst
der Rom. Lit. § 384, 7), as also the Greek these Cappadocians. As far as 1 have seen,
tragedy, still extant, of Christus patient. either the people will not sacrifice, or the very
Whatever their merit, these books could not few that are ready to do so are ignorant of
properly supply the place of the classical our ritual " {Ep. 4). He had already shewn
training; and if Julian had lived and this his anger against the people of Caesarea, the
edict had been put in force for any time, it capital of the province, who had dared, after
would have been a very dangerous injury to his accession, to destroy the Temple of For-
the faith. (Socrates has some very good tune, the last that remained standing in their
remarks on this subject, iii. 16.) city. According to Sozomen (v. 4), he erased
§ 5. Julian's Journey through Asia Minor
— the city from the " list of the empire and

(May to July 362). After a sojourn of about called it by its old name Mazaca." He fined
five months in Constantinople Julian began the Christians 300 pounds of gold, confiscated
to think of foreign affairs. Fears of internal church property, and enrolled the ecclesiastics
resistance were removed by the surrender of in themilitia of the province, besides imposinga
Aquileia, which had been seized by some troops heavypoll-tax onthe Christian laity. But either
of Constantius. He determined upon an expe- these severe measures must have been justified
dition against Persia, the only power he thought by great violence on the part of the Christians
worthy of his steel. Shortly after May 12 he or Sozomen's account is exaggerated for ;

set out upon a progress through Asia Minor Gregory Nazianzen says that it is perhaps not
to Antioch. He passed through Nicaea into fair to reproach him with his violent conduct
Galatia, apparently as far as Ancyra, from to the Caesareans, and speaks of him as
which place, perhaps, he dispatched the edict " justly indignant " {Or. 4, 92, p. 126). Such
about education just described (Amm. xxii. 9, mild language in this instance may well make
5. If the law. Cod. Just. i. 40, 5, is rightly us attach more weight to Gregory's statements
attributed to Julian, he was at Ancyra on as to J ulian's misdoings on other occasions. The
May 28, to which visit belongs a somewhat emperor was further incensed by the tumul-
hyperbolical inscription celebrating his tri- tuous election of Eusebius to the bishopric of
umphant march from the Western Ocean to Caesarea, in which the soldiers of the garrison
the Tigris, beginning, domiiVO totivs orbis took part. This Eusebius was still a catechu-
I
IVLIANO AVGVSTO EX OCEANO BRI TAN-
j

| men, but a man of official rank and influence,


Nico (C. 7. L. iii. 247, Orell. 1109, Wilmanns known to be an enemy of the emperor (Greg. Or.
1089). From Ancyra he visited Pessinus in in Patrem, xviii. 33, p. 354). The elder Gregory
Phrygia to pay homage to the famous sanc- firmly resisted theremonstrances of the governor
tuary of the Mother of the Gods, at which he who was sent
of the province, to him by J ulian,
offered large and costly presents (Amm. I.e. ;
and the storm passed away {ib. 34, p. 355).
Liban. ad Jul. cos. p. 398). The oration in '
' You knew us, "
cried Gregory, "you knew Basil
honour of this deity, who, with the Sun-god, and myself from the time of your sojourn in
was Julian's chief object of veneration, was Greece, and you paid us the compliment which
probably delivered earlier but he took occasion
; the Cyclops paid Ulysses, and kept us to be
about this time to vindicate the doctrine of swallowed last " {Or. 5, 39, p. 174). The silence
Diogenes from the aspersions of false and luxu- of Gregory may be taken as clenching the
rious cynics {Or. vi. ei's rov^ aTraLSevrovs Kvvas, arguments from style against the genuineness
delivered about the summer solstice, p. 181 a). of the supposed correspondence between
He was not satisfied with the progress of Julian and St. Basil, which would otherwise
heathenism amongst the people of the place be assigned to this date (see pp. 490 f.). The
(Ep. 49, Arsacio pontifici Galatiae, ad fin.). letters referred to are Epp. 40, 41, in the
At Anc>Ta, according to the Acts of the editions of St. Basil, the first of these Jul. =
Martyrs, a presbyter named Basil was accused Ep. 75 {77 Heyler) cf. Rode, p. 86, note 11.
;

of exciting the people against the gods and A more pleasant reception awaited Julian
speaking injuriously of the emperor and his in the neighbouring province, Cilicia. Enter-
apostate courtiers. Basil was cruellv treated ing it by the famous pass of the Pylae Ciliciae,
in his presence, and, after a second trial, was he was met by the governor, his friend Celsus,
590 JULIANUS, PLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS
once his fellow-student, and probably his cession on the tips of his toes, and swaying his
confidant at Athens, who greeted him with a shoulders from side to side, surrounded by a

panegyric a greeting more agreeable to crowd of abandoned characters, such as
Julian than the customary presents made to formed the regular attendants upon many
emperors in their progresses (Amm. xxii. 9, heathen festivals, appeared seriously to com-
13; Liban. Epit. p. 575, and Ep. 648). Julian promise the dignity of the empire. The blood
shewed his high esteem for his encomiast by of countless victims flowed everywhere, but
taking him up into his chariot and entering seemed to serve merely to gorge his foreign
with him into Tarsus, a city which evidently soldiery, especially the semi-barbarous Gauls ;

pleased him by its welcome. Celsus accom- and the streets of Antioch were disturbed
panied him to the southern boundary of his by their revels (Amm. xxii. 12, 6). Secret
province, a few leagues N. of Antioch. Here rumours spread of horrid nocturnal sacrifices
they were met by a large crowd, among whom and of the pursuit of arts of necromancy from
was Libanius (Liban. de Vita Sua, p. 81 ;
which the natural heathen conscience shrank
Ep. 648 ; see Sievers, Libanius, p. 91). He only less than the Christian. The wonder is,
reached Antioch before July 28, the date of a not that Julian quarrelled with the Antioch-
law found in both the Codes, permitting pro- enes, but that he left the city without a
vincial governors to appoint inferior judges greater explosion than actually took place.
or judices pedanei {Cod. Theod. i. 68 = Cod. Not a little of the irritation between the
Just. iii. 3, 5 cf. C. I. L. iii. 459).
; emperor and the citizens was centred upon the
§ 6. Julian's Residence at Antioch (July 362 suburb of the city, called Daphne, a delicious
to March 5, 363). —The eight months spent cool retreat in which, as it was fabled, the
at Antioch left Julian yet more bitter against nymph beloved by Apollo had been trans-
the church, and less careful to avoid injustice formed into a laurel. Here was a celebrated
to its members, in fact countenancing per- temple of the god, and a spring that bore the
secution even to death, though in word still name of Castalian, in former days the favour-
forbidding it and proclaiming toleration. ite haunt of the gay, the luxurious, and the
(Libanius says that Julian spent nine months vicious. Gallus had counteracted the genius
at Antioch, Epit. p. 578, 15, but it is hard to loci by transposing to it the relics of the
make more than eight.) The narrative of martyr bp. Babylas, whose chai:>el was
this period may be divided into an account of erected opposite the temple of Apollo. The
(a) his relations with the citizens of Antioch ;
worship of the latter had almost ceased, and
(b) his relations to the church at large ;
(c) Julian, going to Daphne in Aug. (Loiis), to
attempt to rebuild the temple at Jerusalem. keep the annual festival of the Sun-god, was
(a) Internal State of Antioch. — On his en- surprised to find no gathering of worshippers.
trance into the city Libanius greeted him in He himself had returned for the purpose from
a speech in which he congratulated him on a visit to the temple of Zeus Casius, several
bringing back at once the ancient rites of leagues distant. To his disgust the city had
sacrifice and the honour to the profession provided no sacrifice, and only one poor priest
of rhetoric (Prosphonelicus Juliano, ed. Reiske, appeared, offering a single goose at his own
i. p. 405). But other sounds saddened Julian expense. Julian rated the town council
with a presage of his coming doom. It was soundly {Misop. pp. 361 d, seq.). He took care
the festival of the lamentation for Adonis, and that in future sacrifices should not be wanting,
the air resounded with shrieks for the lover of and eagerly consulted the oracle and un-
Venus, cut down in his prime as the green corn stopped the Castalian spring. After a long
fails before the heat of the summer sun. This silence he learnt that Apollo was disturbed by
ill-omened beginning was followed by other the presence of the " dead man," i.e. Babylas.
equally unpropitious circumstances, and the " I am surrounded by corpses," said the voice,
residence of Julian at Antioch was a dis- " and I cannot speak till they are removed "
appointment to himself and disagreeabla to (Soz. v. 19 Chrys. de S. Bab. § 15, p. 669 ;
;

almost all the inhabitants. He was impatient, Liban. Monodia in Daphnen, vol. iii. p. 333).
or soon became so, to engage upon his Persian All the corpses were cleared away, but espe-
campaign ;but the difficulty of making the cially that of the martyr (Amm. xxii. 12, 8 ;

necessary preparations in time determined Misop. p. 361 b). a remnant of religious awe
him to pass the winter at the Syrian capital perhaps prevented Julian from destroying the
(Liban. Epit. p. 576 ; Amm. xxii. 10, i). He relics of which his actions practically acknow-
had anticipated much more devotion on the ledged the power, and they were eagerly
part of the pagans and much less resistance seized by the Christians and borne in triumph
on that of the Christians. He was disgusted to Antioch. The procession along the five
to find that both parties regretted the pre- miles from Daphne to the city chanted aloud
vious reign —" Neither the Chi nor the Ps. xcvii. " Confounded be all tliey that
:

Kappa " {i.e. neither Christ nor Constantius) worship carved images and that delight in
" did our city any harm " became a common vain gods." Julian, incensed by this person-
saying {Misopogon, p. 357 a). To the heathens ality, forced the prefect Sallustius, much
themselves the enthusiastic form of religion against his will, to inquire into it with
to which Julian was devoted was little more severity and punish those concerned. One
than an unpleasant and somewhat vulgar young man, Theodorus, was hung upon the
anachronism. His cynic asceticism and rack {equuleus) and cruelly scourged with iron
dislike of the theatre and the circus was nails for a whole day, till he was supposed to
unpopular in a city particularly addicted to be dying. Rufinus, the church historian, who
public spectacles. His superstition was met him in after-life, asked him how he bore
equally unpalatable. The short, untidy, long- the pain. Theodorus replied that he had felt
bearded man, marching pompously in pro- but little, for a yoimg man stood by him
JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, PLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 591
wiping off the sweat of his agony and com- News was brought that Constantinople was
forting him all the time (Rutin, i. 35, 36, re- in danger from the same cause, and some
ferred to by Soc. iii. 19, and given in Ruinart, suggested that the wrath of the earth-shaker
Acta Martyrum, p. 604, ed. Rabisbon. 1859). Poseidon must be appeased. This gave J ulian,
The anger of Julian was also braved by a who had a real affection for the city, an oppor-
widow named Publia, the head of a small tunity of showing his enthusiasm. He stood
community of Christian virgins, who sang in all day long in the open air, under rain and
his hearing the Psalms against idols and storm, in a fixed and rigid attitude, like an
against the enemies of God. She was brought Indian yogi, while his courtiers looked on in
before a court and buffeted on the face with amazement from under cover. It was calcu-
severity, but dismissed (Theod. iii. 19). lated afterwards that the earthquake stopped
Shortly after the translation of the relics of on the very day of the imperial intercession,
St. Babyias to Antioch, on the night of Oct. 22, and Julian, it is said, took no harm from his
the temple of Daphne itself was burnt to the exposure (Liban. Epit. p. 581). But this partial
ground. The heathens accused the Christians success did not make him feel secure of the
of maliciously setting it on fire ;they attri- favour of the gods. He was convinced that
buted it to iire from heaven and the prayers Apollo had deserted Daphne and the other
of St. Babyias. A story also got about that deities were not propitious. Even the day
Asclepiades the cynic had left a number of of his entering the consulship, Jan. i, 363,
lighted candles burning in the shrine (Amm. graced with anoration of Libanius {ad Jul. imp.
xxii. 13 ; Soz. v. 20 ;Chrys. de S. Bab. § 17, consulem), was disfigured by a bad omen a :

p. 674). Julian's wrath was intense. He priest fell dead on the steps of the temple of the
accused the Christians of the deed, and sus- Genius. This was the more annoying, as he had
pected the priests of knowing about it {Misop. no doubt intended to make his fourth consul-
pp. 346 B, 361 B, c). As a punishment he ship mark a new era by taking as his colleague
ordered the cathedral church of Antioch to his old friend Sallustius prefect of the Gauls, an
be closed, and confiscated its goods (Amm. honour paid to no one outside the imperial
xxii. 13, 2 ; Soz. v. 8). The order was exe- family since the days of Diocletian (Amm.
cuted by his uncle Julianus, now count of the xxiiL I, i). At the same time too he received
East, with all the zeal of a new convert and news of the failure of the attempt (see (c),
with circumstances of disgusting profanity. infra) to rebuild the temple at Jerusalem
Theodoret, a presbyter, who still collected a (Amm. xxiii. i, 3).
congregation of the faithful, was tortured and Meanwhile his designs for involving the
beheaded (Ruinart, Acta Mart. p. 605). The city in heathen rites caused considerable ex-
Christian account tells us that Julian reproved citement and odium. He profaned the
his uncle as having brought him into disgrace, fountains of the city of Daphne according
but in the Misopogon he gives him nothing but to Christian ideas, and consecrated them
praise {ib. p. 607, Misop. p. 365 c). The count's according to his own, by throwing into them
miserable death, which followed soon after, a portion of his sacrifices, so that all who
was naturally treated as a judgment from used them might be partakers with the gods,
heaven (Soz. v. 8 Theod. iii. 12, etc.). That
;
and for a similar reason ordered all things sold
of Felix, another renegade, had, a little earlier, in the market, such as bread, meat, and vege-
been equally remarkable for its suddenness. tables, to be sprinkled with lustral water.
The two were regarded as a presage of the The Christians complained but followed the
emperor's own doom, for now that Julianus precept of the apostle in eating freely all
and Felix were gone, Augustus would soon things sold in public, without inquiry (Theod.
follow, a play upon the imperial title Julianus iii. 15). Two young officers, Juventinus and
Felix Augustus (Amm. xxiii. i, 5). This was Maximinus, were one day lamenting this state
a trivial saying, but calculated to disquiet and of things, and quoted the words from the
irritate a mind like Julian's. Greek Daniel, c. iii. 32, " Thou hast delivered
Antioch meanwhile was afflicted by a us to a lawless king, to an apostate beyond all
dearth, which almost became a famine, and the heathen that are in the earth." Their
the emperor's efforts to alleviate it failed. words were repeated by an informer, and
He imported a large quantity of grain from they were ordered to appear before the
Egypt, and fixed the market price at a low emperor. They declared the cause of their
figure. Speculators bought up his importa- complaint, the only one (as they said) which
tions, and would not sell their own stores, and they had to bring against his government.
soon there was nothing in the markets. J ulian They were thrown into prison, and friends
declared that the fault was in the magistrates, were sent to promise them large rewards if
and tried in vain to infuse some of his own they would change their religion but they ;

public spirit into the farmers and merchants stood firm, and were beheaded in the middle
(Liban. Epit. p. 587). The town council were of the night, on the charge of having spoken
sent to prison (Amm. xxii. 14, 2 Liban. Epit. evil of the emperor (Chrys. in Juvent. et Max.
;

p. 588). Their confinement, however, did not 3 cf. Theod. iii. 15). The date of this " mar-
;

last a day, and they were released by the tyrdom " may have been Jan. 25, as it appears
intercession of Libanius, who tells us that he in Latin calendars (Boll. Jan. p. 618).
was not deterred from his petition by the Julian discharged his spleen upon the
sarcastic hint that the Orontes was not far Antiochenes by writing one of the most re-
off (de Vita Sua, vol. i. p. 85). The whole markable satires ever published the Misopo-
"He had been insulted," says Gibbon,

wiater, indeed, was clouded with misfortunes. gon.
On Dec. 2 the rest of Nicomedia was des- "by satires and libels in his turn he composed,
;

troyed by earthquake, and a large part of under the title of The Enemy of the Beard,
Nicaea suffered with it (Amm. xxii. 13, 5). an ironical confession of his own faults aud a
'

592 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, PLAVIUS CLAUDIUS


severe satire on the licentious and effeminate tinence, and calumniating Titus as the accuser
manners of Antioch. The imperial reply was of the Christian body. After quoting the
publicly exposed before the gates of the palace, memorial of Titus, he proceeds " These are
:

and the Misopogon still remains a singular the words of the bishop concerning you. Ob-
monument of the resentment, the wit, the" serve, he does not ascribe your regularity to
humanity, and the indiscretion of Julian your own inclination unwillingly, he says, you
;

(Decline and Fall, c. 24, vol. 3, p. 8, ed. Bohn). refrain by his exhortations.'
'
Do you then use
Julian's own philosophic beard gives the title your and expel him as your accuser from
wills,
to the pamphlet, which throws much light upon your city. . Such is their fate who turn
. .

the character of the emperor. In form it is a from the worship of the immortal gods to dead
dialogue between himself and the people, in men and relics " [Ep. 52).
which he describes his own virtues under the A month or two later, probably in Oct., he
colour of vices, and their vices as if they were continued his attack upon Athanasius, the first
virtues. Occasionally he lays aside his irony and acts of which have already been described.
directly expresses his indignation against them, The great champion had never left Alexandria,
and reveals his own character with a humorous or had soon returned. Julian was thoroughly
simplicity that in turn attracts and repels us. enraged to find his first order had not been
Thispamphletwaswritteninthe seventh month executed. He wrote angrily to the prefect
of his sojourn at Antioch, probably, that is, in Ecdicius: " I swear by great Serapis if he does
the latter half of J an. and he left the city in the
; not leave Alexandria and every part of
first week of March. " I turn my back upon Egypt, by the ist of Dec, I will fine your
a city full of all vices, insolence, drunkenness, cohort a hundred pounds of gold. You know
incontinence, impiety, avarice, and impu- that I am slow to condemn, but when I hav£
dence," were his last words to Antioch (Liban. condemned much slower in pardoning," add-"'
Legatio ad Jul. pp. 469 seq.). ing in his own hand, " I am thoroughly pained
(b) Julian's Relation to the Church at Large at being treated in this way with contempt.

during his Residence at Antioch. -The general By all the gods, no sight, or rather no news,
object of the emperor's policy was to degrade of your doings could give me greater pleasure
Christianity and to promote heathenism by than that of Athanasius being driven from
every means short of an edict of persecution Egypt, the scoundrel who in my reign has
or the imposition of a general penalty on the dared to baptize Greek ladies of rank. Let
profession of the faith. him be expelled " {Ep. 6). At the same time
We do not possess the text of many of he wrote to the people of Alexandria, mingling
Julian's edicts, a number of which were personal abuse of their bishop with arguments
naturally removed from the statute book. to enforce the worship of Serapis and the
We know that he ordered the temples to be visible gods, the sun and moon, and to de-
reopened and their estates to be restored, but preciate the worship of " Jesus, Whom neither
we do not know the terms in which this order you nor your fathers have seen," and " Whose
was couched. Probably he used bitter lan- doctrine has done nothing for your city."
guage against the " atheists " and " Gali- " We have long ago ordered him," he con-
leans," ordering all chapels of martyrs built cludes, " to leave the city, now we banish
within the sacred precincts to be destroyed, him from the whole of Egypt " (Ep. 51).
and all relics of " dead men " to be sum- The news of these decrees was brought to
marily removed. Something of this kind Athanasius on Oct. 23, and he felt it time to
must have been the (rvfdrjfj.a or " signal," of depart. " Be of good heart," he said to those
which he speaks in the Misopogon as having who clustered round him, " it is but a cloud ;

it will soon pass " (Ruf. i. 32


'

been followed by the neighbouring holy cities


'

' ;Festal Epistles,


of Syria with a zeal and enthusiasm which Chronicle, p. 14, for the date). During the
exceeded even his wishes (Misop. p. 361 a ;
rest of Julian's reign he lived in retirement in
Soz. p. 20, ad fin., mentions an order to the monasteries of the Egyptian desert.
destroy two Christian chapels near the temple To Hecebolius (who was perhaps his old
of Apollo Didymaeus at Miletus). This con- master advanced to some place of authority)
fession from his own mouth goes far to justify he wrote concerning a sedition at Edessa, in
the statements of his opponents. Riots oc- much the same terms as he had written to the
curred in consequence of this " signal " in people of Bostra, but apparently with more
many cities, particularly of Syria and the justice. " I have always used the Galileans
East, where the Christians were numerous well, and abstained from violent measures of
and popular passion was strong. The details conversion but the Arians, luxuriating in
;

of J ulian's relation to some of these cases form their wealth, have treated the Valentinians in
perhaps the gravest stains upon his character. a manner which cannot be tolerated in a well-
The earliest case after his entry into An- ordered city. In order, therefore, that they
tioch which can be dated exactly was that may enter more easily into the kingdom of
of Titus, bp. of Bostra, in Arabia Auranitis. Heaven in the way which their wonderful
Julian had informed Titus that he should be law bids them, I have ordered all the money
held responsible for any breach of the peace of the church of Edessa to be seized for
(Soz. V. 15, p. 102 b). The bishop answered division amongst the soldiers, and its estates
by a memorial, declaring that the Christian to be confiscated " (Ep. 43, cf. Rutin, i. 32 ;

population was equal in numbers to the Socr. iii. 13). This twisting of the gospel
heathen but that under his influence and that precept against the church is a close parallel
of their clergy they were careful to abstain to the alleged edict forbidding Christians to
from sedition (ib.). Julian on Aug. i, 362, exercise the sword of the magistrate, and sup-
replied by a public letter to the people of ports its authenticity (so Rode, p. 85, n. 9,
Bostra, representing this language as an imper- see supra). Another disturbance was reported
JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 593
as occurring between the cities of Gaza and cution of his Persian campaign. This is
Maiuma in Palestine. The latter, originally a substantially the account given by Socrates,
suburb of Gaza, had been raised by Constantius who tells us that he summoned the Jews to
to the rank of an independent corporation. him and asked why they did not offer sacrifice.
The people of Gaza had successfully peti- They replied that it was not lawful for them
tioned the new emperor for a withdrawal of to do so, except at Jerusalem, and he there-
these privileges, and now in their exultation fore determined to rebuild the temple of
attacked their neighbours, and set fire to their Solomon (Socr. iii. 20). This account agrees
chapels, with other acts of violence. Three best with the statements of the emperor him-
brothers of a respectable family named Euse- self in his epistles and in his books against the
bius, Nestabus, and Zeno, were murdered with Christians, and other motives attributed to
circumstances of great atrocity. The people him may be considered as subordinate (cf.
were considerably alarmed by fear of what the Greg. Or. 5, 3, p. 149 ; Rufin. i. 37
; Soz. v.
emperor might do, and the governor arrested 21). There is, however, an air of great prob-
some of the ringleaders, who were brought ability in the statement of Philostorgius that
to Antioch. In this case Julian's sense of he wished to falsify the prediction of our
justice seems entirely to have deserted him. Blessed Lord as to the utter destruction of the
Not only was no reprimand addressed to the temple (vii. 9). Nor could the enmity of the
people of Gaza, but the governor was himself Jews against the Christians be otherwise than
put on his trial and deprived of his office. very pleasing to him (Greg. I.e. iwacpTJKe Kal
" What great matter is it if one Greek hand t6 '\ov5aiu}v 0DXo>' iituf). Julian provided
has slain ten Galileans ? " were words well very large sums for the work, and entrusted
calculated to bear bitter Iruit wherever they its execution to the oversight of Alypius of
were repeated, and equivalent, as Gregory Antioch, an officer who had been employed
argues, to an edict of persecution (Greg. Or. 4, by him in Britain and who was his intimate
93, p. 127 ; Sozomen^a Gazene himself — v. personal friend (Amm. xxiii. i. 2 ; Epp. 29 and
9). Rode accepts most of this story, but re- 30 are addressed to him). The Jews were
jects without sufficient reason the words exultant and eager to contribute their wealth
attributed to Julian, p. 92, n. 12, who did and and their labour. The rubbish was cleared
said many things in a fit of passion, of which away and the old foundations were laid bare.
his cooler judgment disapproved. Dis- But a stronger power intervened. To quote
turbances against the Christians broke out in the words of Ammianus :
" Whilst Alypius
many parts of Palestine. Holy places and was strenuously forcing on the work, and the
holy things were profaned, and Christian governor of the province was lending his
people maltreated, tortured, and destroyed, assistance, fearful balls of flames, bursting
sometimes in the most abominable manner out with frequent assaults near the founda-
(Chron. Pasch. p. 546, ed. Bonn. Soz. v. 21
;
; tions, and several times burning the workmen,
Philost. vii. 4). rendered access to the spot impossible ; and
Meanwhile Mark, bp. of Arethusa, a small in this way the attempt came to a standstill
town in Syria, who was said to have saved through the determined obstinacy of the ele-
the life of the infant Julian, had refused to ment " (xxiii. I, 3). No doubt the Christians
pay for the restoration of a temple which he saw in this defeat of their oppressor not
had destroyed in the preceding reign. He was only a miracle of divine power, but a pecu-
scourged in public, his beard was torn, his liarly striking fulfilment of the old prophecies
naked body was smeared with honey and hung in which fire is so often spoken of as the em-
up in a net exposed to the stings of insects blem and instrument of judgment (e.g. Deut.
and the fierce rays of the Syrian sun. Nothing xxxii. 22, Jer. xxi. 14, and particularly, per-
could be wrung from him, and he was at last haps, the historical description of Lam. iv. 11,
set free, a conqueror (Greg. Or. 4, 88-91, pp. " The Lord hath accomplished His fury He ;

122-125 Soz. v. 10).


; Wherever he went, he hath poured out His fierce anger, and hath
was surrounded by admirers, and this case kindled a fire in Zion, and it hath devoured
became a warning to the more temperate and the foundations thereof"). They thought
cautious pagans not to proceed to extremities. also, of course, of our Lord's own words, now
Libanius intercedes for an offender, lest he more completely verified than ever. Julian
should turn out another Mark {Ep. 730) and retained his wide knowledge of the text of
;

Sallust, the prefect of the East, admonished Scripture, as we see by his writings, and these
Julian for the disgrace this fruitless contest prophecies doubtless irritated him by their
with an old man brought upon the pagan literal exactness. The " globi flammarum
cause (Greg. I.e. Sallust's name is not men- prope fundamenta erumpentes " of the heathen
;

tioned, but his office and character are de- historian are an undesigned coincidence with
scribed with sufficient clearness). the words of Hebrew prophecy.
(c) Attempt to rebuild the Temple at Jerusa- From heathen testimonies, and from the
lem. —Julian had apparently for some time fathers and historians of the church. Dr.
past wished to conciliate the Jewish people, Newman has put together the following de-
and was quite ready to grant Jehovah a place tailed account of the occurrence, in which he
amongst the other local deities (cf. Frag. p. chiefly follows Warburton. The order of the
295 c St. Cyril, in Spanheim's Julian, pp. incidents is, of course, not certain, but only
;

99, 100, and p. 305, on Sacrifice). It seems a matter of probable inference nor can we ;

probable, therefore, that his chief motive in guarantee the details as they appear in the
wishing to restore the temple at Jerusalem later writers. "They declare as follows:
was the desire to increase the number of The work was interrupted by a violent whirl-
divinitieswho were propitious to him, and to wind, says Theodoret, which scattered about
gain the favour of the Jewish God in the prose- vast quantities of lime, sand and other loose
38
;

594 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS


materials collected for the building. A storm tious preparations for sacrifice upon the
of thunder and lightning followed fire fell,
; public roads, but thought them too obviously
says Socrates, and the workmen's tools, the studied and too redolent of personal flattery.
spades, the axes, and the saws were melted Leaving Edessa on his left hand, probably as
down. Then came an earthquake, which threw a city too distinctly Christian to be visited
up the stones of the old foundation, says with comfort, he had reached Carrhae, a
Socrates ;filled up the excavation, says place of vigorous pagan traditions, on Mar. 19.
Theodoret, which had been made for the new At some distance from the town there was a
foundations ;and, as Rufinus adds, threw famous temple of the Moon, in which it was
down the buildings in the neighbourhood, worshipped both as a male and a female deity,
and especially the public porticoes in which and near which the emperor Caracalla had
were numbers of the Jews who had been been murdered (Herodian. iv. 13, 3; Spartian.
aiding in the undertaking, and who were Caracallus, 6, 6 7, 3).
;
Julian made a point
buried in the ruins. The workmen re- of visiting it and offered sacrifices " according
turned to their work but from the re-
; to the local rites." Of his secret doings in
cesses, laid open by the earthquake, balls of this temple there are different accounts.
fire burst out, says Ammianus and that
; Ammianus had heard that he invested his
again and again as often as they renewed the relative Procopius, who was his only com-
attempt. The fiery mass, says Rufinus, raged panion, with his paludamentum, and bid him
up and down the street for hours and St. ; seize the empire in case he died in the cam-
Gregory, that when some fled to a neighbour- paign on which they were engaged (Aram,
ing church for safety the fire met them at the xxiii. 3, 2). Among Christians a report was
door and forced them back, with the loss either current that he offered a human sacrifice:.,
of life or of their extremities. At length the The story ran that he sealed up the temple
commotion ceased a calm succeeded and,
; ; and ordered it not to be opened till his return :

as St. Gregory adds, in the sky appeared a and that after the news of his death people
luminous cross surrounded by a circle. Nay, entered it and found a woman hanging by the
upon the garments and the bodies of the hair of her head, and her body cut open as if
persons present crosses were impressed, says to search for omens (Theod. iii. 26).
St. Gregory ; which were luminous by night, On Mar. 27 he was at Callinicum and cele-
says Rufinus and at other times of a dark
; brated the festival of the Mother of the Gods
colour, says Theodoret and would not wash
; (Amm. xxiii. 3, 7). At the beginning of Apr.
out, adds Socrates. In consequence the he came to Circesium (Carchemish) at the
attempt was abandoned " (Newman, Essay junction of the Chaboras and the Euphrates.
on Miracles in Early Eccl. Hist. p. clxxvii.). Here he received distressing letters from his
All these incidents present a picture consistent friend Sallustius in Gaul, urging him to give
with the extraordinary operations of the up his campaign as he felt sure that the gods
forces of nature. Even for the luminous were unfavourable (Amm. xxiii. 5, 6). At
crosses there are curious parallels in the Zaitham (where Ammianus first begins to
history of storms of lightning and volcanic speak in the first person) they saw the high
eruptions (see those collected by Warburton mound which marked the burial-place of the
and quoted by Newman, p. clxxxii. notes). emperor Gordian. The historian records
The cross in the sky has its likeness in the numerous portents on their march ;
among
effects of mock suns and parhelia. But even them, a lion which appeared at Dura gave rise
so, aChristian may still fairly assert his right to a curious dispute between the Etruscan
to call the event a miraculous interposition augurs and the philosophers who followed in
of God's providence. It fulfilled all the pur- his train. The former shewed from their
poses we can assign to the Scripture miracles. books that it was an ill omen ; the latter
It gave " an impression of the present agency (amongst whom were Maximus and Priscus)
and of the will of God." It seemed to shew had historical precedents to prove that it need

His severe disapproval of the attempt and not be so regarded. A similar dispute
fulfilled the prophecy of Christ. It came, occurred next day as to the meaning of a
like the vision of Constantine, at a critical thunderstorm (xxiii. 5, 10 seq.). Such super-
epoch in the world's history. It was, as the stitious discussions were not likely to embolden
heathen poet has it, a " dignus vindice nodus." the soldierv ; but Julian decided in favour of
All who were present or heard of the event at the philosophers, animated the army with
the time thought it, we may be sure, a sign his own courage, and tried to dispel the pre-
from God. As a miracle it ranges beside judice that the Romans had never invaded
those Biblical which, at some
miracles in Persia with success. One of his most import-
critical moment, the forces of nature are seen ant officers, Hormisdas (elder brother of
to work strikingly for God's people or against Sapor, the reigning king of Persia), had angered
their enemies. the nobles of his country by threats, had been
§ 7. Julian's Persian Campaign and Death imprisoned by them, and escaped to the court
(Mar. 5 to June 27, 363). —
Julian's route into
Persia is marked with considerable exactness
of Constantine. He became apparently a sin-
cere Christian yet remained a useful and trusted
,

the first part of it by a letter which he wrote officer of Julian. By his intervention several
to Libanius from Hierapolis (Ep. 27). At Assyrian towns opened their gates to the
Beroea, the modern Aleppo, he " conversed invaders (xxiv. i, 6, etc.). The country was
with the senate on matters of religion all — inundated by the natives, and it required all
praised my discourse, but few only were con- Julian's inventive quickness and personal
vinced by it " (Ep. 27, p. 399 D). example to carry the army through the
At Batnae (the scenery of which he com- marshes. After various successes he arrived
pared to that of Daphne) he found ostenta- at the bank of the Tigris, at the ruins of
JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 595
the old Greek city of Seleucia opposite wrath of Mars, whom he had already offended
Ctesiphon. He forced the passage of the river (xxv. 2, 4 cf. xxiv.
; 6, 17). When day
by a very vigorous and dangerous move- dawned the Etruscan diviners implored him
ment in the face of the enemy, and found to make no movement that day, or at least to
himself under the walls of the capital (xxiv. put off his march for some hours. But his
6, 4-14). But no threats or sarcasms could courage had returned with daylight, and he
draw the inhabitants from their impregnable gave the order to advance. Sudden attacks
defences, and Sapor himself made no ap- of the enemy from different quarters threw
pearance. Part of the Roman army had the army into confusion, and Julian, ex-
been left in Mesopotamia, where the two cited by the danger, rushed forward without
ambitious generals, Procopius and Sebastian- his breastplate, catching up a shield as he
us, fell out, and the support expected from went. As he raised his hands above his head
Arsaces was not forthcoming. But though to urge his men to pursue, a cavalry spear
Sapor did not appear to give battle, he sent a from an unknown hand grazed his arm and
secret ambassador with offers of an honourable lodged in his right side. He tried to draw
peace, the exact terms of which are unknown out the spear-head, but the sharp edges cut
to us (Liban. Epit. p. 608 ; Socr. iii. 21 ; his fingers. He threw up his hand with a con-
Ammianus is here defective). These Julian vulsive motion, and fell fainting from his horse
declined, against the advice of Hormisdas. (xxv. 3, 7, compared with other accounts) utter-,

He was fired with all sorts of vague and ing a cry which is differently reported. Some
enthusiastic projects ; he longed to visit the said he threw his own blood towards heaven
plain of Arbela and to overrun the whole with the bitter words, O Galilean, Thou hast
"
Persian empire (Liban. Epit. p. 609). These conquered " (Theod. iii. 25). Others thought
!

ideas were kindled into action by the arts of they heard him reproach the gods, and
a certain Persian noble, who pretended to be especially the Sun, his patron, for their
a deserter, indignant against his sovereign, desertion (Philost. vii. 15 Soz. vi. 2).
; He
but who in reality played the part of a second was borne to his tent and his wound dressed,
ZopNTUs (Greg. Naz. Or. 5, 11, p. 154 ; cf. no doubt by his friend Oribasius. For a
Aurel. Victor. Epit. 67 ; Soz. vi. i, p. 218). moment he revived, and called for a horse and
Julian's fleet presented a difficulty, and he arms, but a gush of blood shewed how weak
determined upon the hazardous measure of he really was. On learning that the place was
burning it, except a very few vessels, which called Phrygia he gave up all hope, having
were to be placed on wheels. This was done been told by some diviner that he should die
at Abuzatha, where he halted five days in Phrygia. He addressed those who stood
(Zos. iii. 26). A short time of reflection around him in a highly philosophic speech in
and a discovery that his Persian informants the style of Socrates, of which Ammianus has
were deceiving him made him regret his preserved a report. He considered that
decision. He attempted too late to save some death was sent him as a gift from the gods.
of the ships. Only twelve out of some 1,100 He knew of no great faults he had committed
were still uninjured. What had been intended either in a private station or as Caesar. He
to be a triumphant progress almost insensibly had always desired the good of his subjects,
became a retreat. The Persian cavalry were and had endeavoured to be a faithful servant
perpetually harassing the outskirts of the of the republic. He had long known the
army, and though beaten at close quarters decree of fate, that his death was impending,
were continually appearing in fresh swarms. and thanked the supreme God that it came,
The few ships that remained were insufficient not in a disgraceful or painful way, but in a
to build a bridge by which to open communica- glorious form. He would not discuss the
tions with Mesopotamia. Nothing was left appointment of his successor, lest he should
but to proceed along the E. bank of the Tigris pass over one who was worthy, or endanger
to the nearest friendly province, Corduene in the life of some one whom he thought fit, but
S. Armenia, as quickly as possible. This was hoped that the republic would find a good
determined on June 16, only ten days before ruler after him. He then distributed his
the death of Julian (Amm. xxiv. 8, 5). How personal effects to his intimate friends, and
far he had previously penetrated into the asked among others for Anatolius, the master
interior is not easy to determine. In the next of the offices. Sallustius (the prefect of the
few days the Romans fought several battles East) replied that he was happy. Julian
with success, but not such as to ensure them understood that he had fallen, but lamented
a quiet march forwards. They suffered from the death of his friend with a natural feeling
\vant of food, and Julian shared their priva- which he had restrained in thinking of his
tions on an equality with the commonest own. Those who stood round could no
soldier (Amm. xxv. 2, 2). On the night of longer restrain their grief, but he still kept his
June 25, as he was studying some book of habit of command, and rebuked them for
philosophy in his tent, he had a vision (as he their want of high feeling. " My life gives
told his intimates) of the Genius of the Re- me confidence of being taken to the islands of
public leaving his tent in a mournful attitude, the blest, to have converse with heaven and
with a veil over his head and over the comu- the stars ; it is mean to weep as if I had
"
. —
copia in his hand reminding him by contrast
of his vision of the night before he was pro-
deserved to be condemned to Tartarus
(Liban. Epit. p. 614, eTrerifxa rois re
claimed Augustus. He shook off his natural &\\ocs, Kcii ovx VKi-o'Ta (rois <pi\ocr6<poii) el tQv
terror, and went out into the night air to offer ^efiniyfxivtAjv avrhv et's fiaKapov vrjcrovs dydi'TUv,
propitiatory sacrifices, when he received an- 01 Se ijbs dfiws Taprdpov jSelSiUKdra SaKpvovaiv :

other shock from the appearance of a brilliant Amm. xxv. 3, 22, " humile esse caelo sideri-
meteor, which he interpreted as a sign of the busque conciliatum lugeri principem dicens ").

696 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS


His lastmoments were spent in a difficult several phases of opinion before he comes to
discussion with Maximus and Priscus on " the a final estimate. All but the cold-hearted
sublimity of souls." In the midst of this will sympathize, to some extent at least, with
debate his wound burst afresh, and he called his religious enthusiasm, and with the sacri-
for a cup of cold water, drank it, and passed fices which he was ready to make in its
away quietly at midnight on the evening of behalf. It is impossible to doubt that he had
June 26, having not yet reached the age of 32 a vein of noble sentiment, and a lofty and, in
(Amm. XXV. 3, 23 5, i Socr. iii. 21, etc.).
; ;
many ways, unselfish ambition. He had a
It was never found out who threw the fatal real love of ideal beauty, and of the literary
spear, though the Persians offered a reward. and artistic traditions of the past. There was
The suggestion of Libanius that it was a Chris- something even pathetic in his hero-worship
tian was such as he would naturally make in and his attachment to those v/hom he sup-
his bitterness (Epit. pp. 612, 614). Gregory, posed to be his friends. If he was often
Socrates, and Rufinus consider it uncertain pedantic and imitative, if he had a somewhat
whether it was a Persian or one of his own shallow and conceited manner, yet we must
soldiers (Greg. Or. v. 13, p. 155 Ruf. i. 36
; ;
confess that much of this was the vice of the
Socr. iii. 21). Sozomen notices the suspicion age, and this pettiness was thrown off in
of Libanius, and defends it in a spirit which critical moments. Under strong excitement
cannot but be condemned (Soz. vi. i). he often became simple, great, and natural.
The news of Julian's death and that the Or again, many persons will sympathize
army had elected a Christian, Jovian, to with his conservative instincts, and his wish
succeed him caused enormous rejoicings, to retain what was great in the culture and
especially in Antioch. Jovian was obliged to art of past ages while others will be attracted «
;

make peace by ceding the five Mesopotamian by his mystic speculations and ascetic prac-
provinces, including Nisibis, which had been tices, which were akin to much that has been
the bulwark of the empire in the East. Pro- valued and admired in many great names in
copius was ordered to carry back the body to the history of the church. But on reflection
Tarsus, where it was interred with pagan we see that all this was combined with a
ceremonies opposite that of Maximinus Daia. ruling spirit and view of things which was
Character. —
Julian's story leaves the im- essentially heathen, and therefore fundament-
pression of a living man far more than that of ally defective, as well as antagonistic, to all
most historical personages. The most opposite that we hold dearest and most vital. Julian
and unexpected estimates of him have been was at bottom thoroughly one-sided. He
formed. He has been admired and pitied was enthusiastic and even passionate in
by religious-minded men, detested and satir- his religion but it was the passion of the
;

ized by sceptics and atheists. His own intellect and senses rather than of the heart.
friend Ammianus despised his superstition, Much of his natural warmth of feeling had
and paints it in terms not much weaker than been chilled and soured by the sense of in-
the invectives of Gregory and Chrysostom ;
justice and secret enmity under which he so
Gibbon sneers at him alternately with hisChris- long laboured. He could not forget the
tian opponents. A. Comte wished to appoint murder of his nearest relations, nor the sus-
an annual day for execrating his memory in picions, intrigues, and actual personal indig-
company with that of Bonaparte, as one of the nities of which he was the subject. What we
" two principal opponents of progress," and know of his early surroundings inclines us to
as the " more insensate " of the two (System suppose that their influence for good was but
of Positive Polity, Eng. trans, vol. i. p. 82 ;
slight. His relation, Eusebius of Nicomedia,
an ordinance afterwards withdrawn, ib. vol. iv. does not bear a high character. His pedagogue
p. 351). Strauss treats him as a vain, re- Mardonius was evidently more heathen than
actionary dreamer, comparable to medieval- Christian in his sympathies, and a time-serving
ists who tried to stay the march of modern creature like Hecebolius was not likely to
thought. On the other hand, pietistic his- make much impression upon his pupil.
torians like Arnold, Neander, and even Ull- We have endeavoured to give a fair general
mann, unlike the ancient writers of the estimate of this remarkable character, with
church, are tolerant and favourable. the full consciousness how hazardous such an
The simple reason of this divergence is, of estimate is. If any one wishes for a catalogue
course, that the strongest force working in of qualities, which can, as it were, be ticketed
him was a self-confident religious enthusiasm, and labelled, he cannot do better than read
disguised under the form of self-surrender to Ammianus's elaborate award (xxv. 4). The
a divine mission. Such a character constantly historian takes the four cardinal virtues
appears in different lights, and some of those temperance, prudence, justice, and courage
who have judged him have looked chiefly and gives a due amount of praise tempered
at the sentimental side of his life, without with some fault-finding under each head.
considering his actions ; while others have His chastity and abstinence were remarkable.
estimated him by his actions apart from his He aimed at justice, and to a great extent
principles —the more so because he was earned a high reputation for it. He was
inconsistent himself in his conduct, and some- liberal to his friends, and careless of his own
tirnes acted with, sometimes against, his comforts and conveniences in a very remark-
principles ; and hence any one who chooses able degree while he did much to lighten and
;

to take a partial view may easily find a justi equalize the burden of taxation upon his
fication in the positive statements of this or subjects. His successes in Gaul gained him
that historian, or of Julian himself. the affection of the people, and his popularity
A Christian who attempts to judge Julian with the soldiers may be gathered from the
without prejudice will probably go through manner in which the dwellers in northern and
:

JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 597


western lands followed him into the midst of precursors of Julian. We may define the ob-
Persia. He may be said to have quelled a jects of their efforts on behalf of paganism as
military tumult by the threat of retiring into (i) To unite popular beliefs in many gods
private life. The lighter qualities of his with some conception of the unity of the divine
character present him in rather a disagreeable being, and to give some consistent, if not
aspect. He was loquacious and inconsistent rational, account of the origin of the world
in small things and in great. He was ex- and of the course of human history.
tremely superstitious, and even fanatical in (2) To defend the myths and legends of
his observance of religious rites, to a degree heathenism, and generally to establish heathen
that made him appear trifling and undignified morals on a higher basis than mere custom.
even to his friends. His manner was obvious- (3) To satisfy the yearnings of the soul for
ly irritating, and such as could not inspire the knowledge of God, while rejecting the
respect in his subjects and, on the other exclusive claims of the Jewish and Christian
;

hand, he was too eager to gain popular revelation.


applause. No one can doubt his cleverness I( Doctrine as to the Nature of God. The
) —
and ability as a writer, but the greater number birth of Christ took place in the fulness of
of his writings do not shew method, and they time, i.e. when mankind had been prepared
are often singularly deficient in judgment. for it, by many influences bearing them to-
An exception, perhaps, may be made in respect wards the acceptance of a revelation. One
to the first oration to Constantius, the letter of the most important of these preparations
to the Athenians, and the Caesars. The was the movement towards monotheism.
latter, however, was a strange performance The old simple belief in many gods living
for one who was himself an emperor. together in a sort of upper world was gone,
In person he was rather short, and awk- and thinking men would accept no system
wardly though very strongly built. His which did not assume the supremacy of one
features were fine and well-marked, and his divine principle, and in some degree "justify"
eyes very brilliant ; his mouth was rather the action of Providence in dealing with man-
over-large and his lower lip inclined to droop. kind as a whole. But the worship of many gods
As a young man he grew a beard, but was re- had too deep a hold upon the fancy and affec-
quired to cut it off when he became Caesar, and tions, as well as the mind, of the people to
seems only to have grown it again after taking be surrendered without a long struggle, and
possession of Constantinople. At Antioch it various methods were advanced to shelter and
was allowed to grow to a great size. His neck protect the current belief. The systems
was thick, and his head hung forward, and thus formed were naturally all more or less
was set on broad and thick shoulders. His pantheistic, finding unity in an informal
walk was ungraceful and he had an unsteady abstraction from the phenomena of nature.
;

motion of the limbs. There is a fine life-size But, as we should expect to be the case on
statue of Julian, of good and artistic work- European soil, they were neither logically
manship, in the ruined hall of his palace in the pantheistic in the abstract way of the Hindu
garden of the Hotel Clugny at Paris. It is philosophical sects nor sharply dualistic like
figured as the frontispiece to E. Talbot's the speculations of the Gnostics and Mani-
translation of his works. cheans. The more practical minds of the

Theory of Religion. Julian's theory was Graeco- Roman world were satisfied to give an
too superficial and occasional to leave much account of things as they appeared without
mark upon the history of thought. His overpowering and paralyzing themselves by
book against Christianity became indeed a the insoluble question as to the existence and
favourite weapon with infidels, but he never potencies of matter ; and thus they were at
founded a school of positive belief. He was, in once more inconsistent and less absurd than
fact, an enthusiastic amateur, who employed some of their contemporaries. While looking
some of the nights of a laborious career of upon matter as something degrading, and
public business in writing brilliant essays in upon contact with it as a thing to be avoided,
the neo-PIatonic manner. He tells us that the they nevertheless did not define matter to be
oration in praise of the Sun took him three non-existent, or merely phenomenal, nor did
nights (p. 157 c) ; that on the Mother of the they regard it as absolutely evil. In the same
Gods was composed, "without taking breath, way, while they lost all true hold upon the
in the short space of one night " (p. 178 d). personality of God, and believed in the
Such work may astonish us even now, but it eternity of the world (e.g. Jul. Or. iv. p. 132 c),
is not surprising that it should be incomplete, they used the terms creation and providence,
rambling, and obscure. and spoke of communion with and likeness to
There are, however, certain constantly God. Into an eclectic system of this kind
recurring thoughts which may be regarded it was not difficult to incorporate the gods of
as established principles with Julian. Julian the heathen world, and to make them subserve
forms one of that long line of remarkable men a sort of philosophy of history. With Julian
in the first four centuries after Christ who they take a double position : (a) as inter-
endeavoured to give a rational form to the mediate beings employed in creation who pro-
rel'gion and morality of the heathen world tect the Supreme Being from too intimate
in opposition to the growing power of Chris- contact with the world ;
(h) as accounting for

tianity men whose ill-success is one of the the difference between nations, and so en-
strongest proofs of the deadness of their own abling men to uphold traditional usages with-
cause, and the vitality of that against which out ceasing to hold to one ideal law and one
they strove. Seneca, Plutarch, Epictetus, truth (Jul. Or. vi. p. 184 C, wcrirep yap dXridfia
Marcus Aurelius, Celsus, Plotinus, Porphyry, fjila, ovTiiJ S^ Kal (piKoiTocpLa. fxia).
lamblichus, and Hierocles were in this sense The chief source of information on this part

598 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS


of Julian's theory is his Fourth Oration, in without any shock to the dreamy neo-
praise of the Sovereign Sun. The most striking Platonist. At one time they are mere es-
feature of the theology proper of this system sences or principles, at another they are Zeus,
is its triple hierarchy of deities and worlds. Apollo, Ares, etc., ruling and directing the
Such a triple division was a common feature fortunes of nations, and imposing upon them
of neo-Platonism and had its roots in thoughts a peculiar type of character and special laws
current before the Christian era ; but it was and institutions. At one moment they are
no doubt emphasized by later theorists as a little more than the ideas of Plato, at another
counterpoise to the Christian doctrine of the they are actual Saifxaues, acting as lieutenants
Trinity. That of Julian was probably bor- of the Creator. This last view is in essentials
rowed from lamblichus of Chalcis (uncle, it the same as that put forward by Celsus
has been supposed, of his correspondent), to (probably in the reign of Marcus Aurelius) in
whom he frequently appeals in terms of the his book, known to us from its refutation by
highest veneration {e.g. Or. iv. p. 146 a, 150 d, Origen (bk. v. cc. 25-33). It is the view as-
157 D ; see Ueberweg, Hist, of Philosophy, serted at length by Julian in his books against
§ 69, vol. i. pp. 252-254, Eng. trans.). the Christians, especially as a defence of the
According to this belief there are three customs and institutions of antiquity against
worlds informed and held together by three the innovations of the religion which strove to
classes of divine beings. The highest and break down all prejudices of class and nation.
most spiritual is the /citr/xos vorjros, or (St. Cyril, adv. Jtd. iv. pp. 115, 116, 130,
" intelligible world," the world of absolute 141, 143, 148, etc. ; cf. Fragmentum Epistolae,
immaterial essences, the centre of which is the p. 292 c, D, Hvdfjiairoi. Tol'5 yevedpxcu-s deols
One or the Good, who is the source of beings d,iroK\r)p<i}deuTes, ol Kai Trporjyayov avrovs, dirb
and of all beauty and perfection to the gods rod 57}/Movpyou ras ^puxas TrapaXa^u/SdcoiTes e'f
who surround him (p. 133 c). Between
at'wj'os for the subject generally, see
this highly elevated region and the grosser ;

Naville, c. iii. " Les Dieux Nationaux.") It


material world comes the koct/jlos voepo^, or
is easy to see how fatal such a doctrine must
" intelligent world," the centre of which is the
be to moral progress. If everything is as it
sovereign sun, the great object of Julian's de-
is by the will of the gods, no custom, how-
votion. He receives his power from the Good, ever revolting, lacks defence. It is strange
and communicates it not only to the gods
that, after the refutation of this absurdity by
around him, but also to the sensible world,
Origen, any one should have been bold enough
the Kda/xos alcrd^rds, in which we live. In this to put it forward as a serious theory (cf. Orig.
sphere the " visible disk " of the sun is the contra Celsum, v. cc. 25-28 and 34-39).
source of light and life, as the invisible sun is With regard to the relation of images and
in the intelligible world. Any one who will sacrifices to the gods, who are worshipped by
read this oration with care will be convinced these means, there is an interesting passage
that Julian wished to find in his sovereign sun
in the Fragment of the Letter to a Priest (pp.
a substitute for the Christian doctrine of the
293 ff.). He warns his correspondent not to
second person of the blessed Trinity, and this consider images as actually receiving worship,
appears in particular on pp. 141, 142 (cf. nor to suppose that the gods really need our
Naville, p. 104 ; Lame, pp. 234 ff.). The sacrifices. But he defends their use as
position specially given to the sun is a proof of
suitable to our own bodily condition (iwahr]
the advance of Oriental thought in the Roman
empire, and it was certainly no new idea of yap rj/xds 6vTas iv athfiari (TiafxaTiKas ISei Trotetcr-
Julian's. Amongst others, Aurelian and Ela- Oai Tols deals Kai ras Xarpeias, dcTibp-aTOi Se
gabalus had made him their chief divinity, and daiv avTol, p. 293 d). "Just as earthly
Constantine himself had been specially de- kings desire to have honour paid them and
voted to the " Sol invictus." Julian, we have their statues without actually needing it, so
seen, had from his childhood been fascinated do the gods. The images of the gods are not
with the physical beauty of the light. To- the gods, and yet more than mere wood and
wards the close of the century we find Macro- stone. They ought to lead us up to the un-
bius arguing somewhat in the spirit of some seen. And yet being made by human art,
modem inquirers that all heathen religion is they are liable to injury at the hands of wicked
the product of solar myths. Yet it is curious men, just as good men are unjustly put to
to observe the shifts to which Julian is put to death like Socrates, and Dion, and Empedo-
prove this doctrine out of Homer and Hesiod, timus. But their murderers afterwards were
and from the customs of the ancient Greeks punished by divine vengeance, and so have
and Romans (pp. 135-137 and 148 S.). He sacrilegious persons manifestly received a due
seems, indeed, conscious of the weakness of his reward in my reign" (pp. 294 c to 295 b).
arguments from the poets, and dismisses them (2) Defence of Pagan Morality. We have —
with the remark that they have much that is already described at some length Julian's
human in their inspiration, and appeals to the attempts to raise the morality of his heathen
directer revelations of the gods themselves subordinates, especially in the priesthood.
we must suppose in the visions which he He was conscious of a defect, and strenuously
claimed to receive (p. 137 c). set himself to remedy it, though he could do
The connexion of this theory with the little more in the way of quotation of texts
national gods is nowhere distinctly worked than allege a few general maxims drawn from
out. It is, in fact, part of the pantheistic ancient writings as to kindness to the poor, etc.
character of this belief that the idea of the His strongest argument is one that might well
personality of the gods recedes or becomes —
have made him hesitate the shame of being
prominent, like the figures in a magic lantern, so much outdone by the " Galileans." An-
according to the subject under discussion. other branch of this subject was the relation of
;

JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS 599


morality to Greek mythology, and with this |
need of some personal commerce with God,
he busied himself on two occasions, about the however inconsistent such a wish was with
same time. The two orations. The Praise of his intellectual view of divine things.
the Mother of the Gods and Against the Cynic (3) Intercourse
with God.— When Julian was
Heraclius, were probably both delivered about in Asia Minor under the influence of the
the time of the vernal equinox, while he was philosophers Eusebius and Chrysanthius, and
still at Constantinople, a.d. 362. In the first heard the details of the wonderful works of
of these he gives an elaborate explanation of Maximus, he said (according to Eunapius),
the story of Attis ; in the second he rebukes " Farewell, and keep to your books if you will
Heraclius for his immoral teaching in the form you have revealed to me the man I was in
of myths, and gives an example of one which search of " (Eunap. Vita Maximi, p. 51). This
he thinks really edifying, which describes his story has been discredited by some, who think
own youth under the protection of the gods. it strange that so great a lover of books as
The explanation of the myth of Attis is Julian should speak slightingly of them. But
important as a specimen of Julian's theology. it is confirmed by his own language in his
According to modern interpreters, this myth, Oration on the Sun (p. 137 c) :
" Let us say
as well as that of Adonis in its hundred forms, farewell to poetic descriptions for they have
;

describes merely the succession of the seasons ; much that is human mixed up with the divine.
Julian adapts it to his speculations on the But let us go on to declare what the god him-
triple hierarchy of worlds. With him the self seems to teach us both about himself and
mother of the gods is the female principle of the other gods" (ix. 11, 5). Julian here
the highest and most spiritual world. He appeals from a book revelation, as it were, to
calls her the lady of all life, the mother and a direct instruction given him in the numerous
bride of great Zeus, the motherless virgin, she visions in which he was visited by the gods.
who bears children without passion, and We have already noticed Julian's enthu-
creates things that are together with the siasm for the mysteries and his love of all
father (p. 166 a, b). Here we are landed into rites and practices which promised a closer
the full obscurity of Gnostic principles and intercourse with the gods. He could never
emanations, and the whole story is evidently bring himself to acquiesce in the colder
only a kind of converse arrangement of that methods of some of the masters of the neo-
which meets us in the Valentinian myth of Platonic school. He was not satisfied with
Achamoth (see Mansel, Gnostic Heresies, the intellectual ecstasy described by Plotinus,
lects. II, 12). Attis is a principle of the nor with the self-purification of Porphyry, who
second or intelligent world, " the productive generally rejected sacrifice and divination
and creative intelligence, the essence which (Ueberweg, Hist, of Philosophy, § 68, notes,
descends into the farthest ends of matter to vol. i. p. 251, Eng. trans.). The party of
give birth to all things " (p. 161 c). It is lamblichus, to which J ulian belonged, required
difficult to see how he is distinguished in his something approaching a control of a god
functions with regard to creation from the [theurgy), a quasi-mechanical method of com-
sovereign sun, but this is only one of the many munication with him, which could be put in
weak points of this fanciful exposition. His force at will, and the result of which could
material type in the lowest world is the Milky only be called a " Bacchic frenzy " {Or. vii. pp.
Way, in which philosophers say that the 217 D and 221 D, etc.). Julian was duped by
impassible circumambient ether mingles with men who were half deceivers and half deceived.
the passible elements of the world (p. 165 c). He is one among many who are forced by an
The mother of the gods engages Attis to inward conviction to believe in supernatural
remain ever faithful to herself, that is, to look revelation, but who will only have it on their
always upward. Instead of this, he descends own terms. Libanius tells us that Julian
into the cave, and has commerce with the knew the forms and lineaments of the gods
nymph, that is, produces the visible universe as familiarly as those of his friends, and we
out of matter. The sun, who is the principle have mentioned the visions which appeared
of harmony and restraint, something like the to him at great crises of his life. He himself
Valentinian Horus (opos), sends the lion or says, "Aesculapius often healed me, telling
fiery principle to put a stop to this production me of remedies" (St. Cyril, adv. Jul. viii.
of visible forms. Then follows the iwropLr) of p. 234), and elsewhere he speaks of this
Attis, which is defined as the^iroxv rrjs aTreipias, deity as a sort of incarnate Saviour (Or. iv.
the limit placed upon the process into infinity. p. 144 B, c). This temper of mind, while
The part played by the sun is indicated by the it speaks in high-flown, positive language of
season at which the festival took place, the the knowledge of God and pours contempt on
vernal equinox, when he produces equality of the uninitiated, yet means something by
day and night (p. 168 c, d). All this is ex- "knowledge" very different from the sober
plained as a mere passionless eternal procedure and bracing certainty attained by Christian
on the part of the supposed gods. A real faith, hope, and love. Here, as elsewhere, the
creation proceeding from God's love and good pantheistic temper speaks grandly, but feels
pleasure was a thought far above the scope meanly. Death indeed is looked forward
of this philosophy, to which the world was as to with some composure as the emancipation
personal as the so-called gods. of the divine element in man from darkness.
Enough has been said to shew how thor- Julian several times prays for a happy death,
oughly pantheistic was Julian's interpreta- andexpected after it to be raised to communion
tion of the myths how destructive of any true
;
with the gods. His orations to the Sun and
conception of the divine nature, how thorough- the Mother of the Gods both conclude with
ly unmoral, how utterly incapable of touching such prayers, and we have seen how he
the heart, was his theology. Yet b? felt the actually met his end (Liban. Ep. p. 614 Amm.
;

600 JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS


XXV. 3, But the doctrine of the ascent
22). in the case of Phinehas (Cyr. v. pp. 160-171).
(sublimiias) of souls, on which he was con- The worst of our generals never treated subject
versing with Maximus and Priscus when that nations so cruelly as Moses treated the
end came, was a very different thing from the Canaanites (vi. p. 184). The only precepts in
Christian's hope. It was, in fact, the same the Decalogue not held in common by all
in substance as the barren and deadening nations are the commandments against
Oriental doctrine of transmigration ;and it idolatry and for the observance of the sabbath.
is remarkable that Julian, who felt himself so The true view, to his mind, was that the God
favoured by the heavenly powers, in one of his of the Jews was a local, national god, like
most ardent prayers to the sun, looks forward those of other peoples, far inferior to the
to a felicity which has no certainty of being supreme God (iv. pp. 115, 116, 141, 148, etc.).
eternal (Or. iv. p. 158 c ; see some good Sometimes he seems inclined to accept
remarks on the contrast between this and the Jehovah as the creator of the visible world,
Christian doctrine in Naville, pp. 59 ff.). while at other times he throws doubt upon this
Julian's Polemic against Christianity. — assumption but in any case he considered
;

How near measures against Christianity were Him a true object of worship (Ep. 25, Judaeis.
to his heart may be seen in his prayer to But in Cyril, iv. p. 148 he blames Moses
the Mother of the Gods, where he speaks of for confounding a partial and national god
" cleansing the empire from the stain of with the Creator). Further, the Jewish usages
atheism " as the great wish of his life {Or. v. of temples, altars, sacrifices, purifications,
p. 180 b). He preferred, however, the method circumcision, etc., were all observed to have
of persuasion to that of constraint, and his a close resemblance to those of heathenism,
books against the Christians are an evidence and were a foundation for many reproaches"
of this temper. He begins by saying that against the Galileans, who had abandoned so
he wishes to give the reasons which have much that was laudable and respectable (vi.
convinced him that the Galilean doctrine p. 202 vii. p. 238 ix. pp. 298, 299, 305, etc.).
; ;

is a human invention (Cyr. ii. p. 39). He (2) Julian's Attack upon Christianity as a
then goes on to attack the narratives of Novel and Revolutionary Religion. In the —
the Bible as fabulous. He allows that the same spirit he puts Xhrisfianity much below
Greeks have monstrous fables likewise (p. 44), Jjudaism. " iTyou who have deserted us had
but then they have philosophy, while Chris- attached yourself to the doctrines of the
tians have nothing but the Bible, and are in Hebrews, you would not have been in so
fact barbarians. If Christians attack the thoroughly bad a condition, though worse
idolatry of heathens, Julian retorts, "you than you were before when you were amongst
worship the wood of the cross, and refuse to us. For you would have worshipped one God
worship the ancile which came down from instead of many gods, and not, as is now the
heaven " (Cyr. vi. p. 194). On the whole, case, a man, or rather a number of miserable
he does not spend much time in such questions, men. You would have had a hard and stern
but accepts the Bible as a generally true law, with much that is barbarous in it, instead
narrative, and rather attacks Christianity on of our mild and gentle customs, and would
grounds of supposed reason, and in connexion have been so far the losers but you would
;

with and in contrast to Judaism. have been purer and more holy in religious
We may follow Naville in considering the rites. As it is, you are like the leeches, and
main body of his works under three heads : suck all the worst blood out of Hebraism and
(i) his polemic against the monotheism of the leave the purer behind " (Cyr. vi. pp. 201, 202).
O.T. ;(2) his attack upon the novel and It was thus natural that St. Paul should be the
aggressive character of Christian doctrine ;
special object of his dislike. " He surpasses
(3) especially against the adoration of Christ all the impostors and charlatans who have
as God, and the worship of " dead men," such ever existed" (Cyr. iii. p. 100). Julian
as the martyrs (cf. Naville, pp. 175 ff. ). accuses the Jewish Christians of having de-
(i) Against the Monotheism of the O.T. — serted a law which Moses declared to be
Julian regarded the gods of polytheism as eternal (ix. p. 319). Even Jesus Himself said
links or intermediaries between the supreme that He came to fulfil the law. Peter declared
God and the material world, and so as render- that he had a vision, in which God shewed him
ing the conception of creation easier and more that no animal was impure (p. 314), and Paul
philosophical. He contrasts Plato's doctrine boldly says, " Christ is the end of the law " ;

of creation in the Timaeus with the abrupt but Moses says, " Ye shall not add unto the
statements of Moses, "God said," etc. (pp. word which I command you, neither shall ye
49-57). One might almost suppose (he urges) diminish ought from it " ; and " Cursed is
"
that Moses imagined God to have created every one that continueth not in all things
nothing incorporeal, no intermediate spiritual (Cyr. ix. p. 320 = Deut. iv. 2, xxvii. 27 ; cf.
or angelic beings, but to have Himself directly X- pp. 343. 351. 354. 356, 358, where he
organized matter (p. 49). He proceeds to argue attacks Christians for giving up sacrifice,
against the supposition that the supreme God circumcision, and the sabbath, and asserts
made choice of the Hebrew nation as a pecu- that Abraham used divination and practised
liar people to the exclusion of others. " If astrology). He sneers at baptism, which
He is the God of all of us, and our common cannot cure any bodily infirmity, but is said
creator, why has He abandoned us ? " (p. to remove all the transgressions of the soul
106). Both in acts and morals the Hebrews adulteries, thefts, etc. —so great is its pene-
are inferior. They have been always in trating power (vii. p. 245).
! The argument
slavery, and have invented nothing. As for against the Christian interpretation of pro-
morality, the imitation of God amongst the phecy is also remarkable. He comments
Jews is the imitation of a "jealous God," as textually on the blessing of Judah, Gen. xlix.
JULIANUS, FLAVIUS CLAUDIUS JULIANUS SABAS 601

10 ; on the prophecy of Balaam, Num. xxiv. a single distinguished person, you may hold
17 ; on that of Moses, Deut. xviii. 15-18 and ; me for a liar in every thing " (vi. p. 206).
on that of Emmanuel, Is. vii. 14 and tries
; It is remarkable that Julian shews practic-
to shew that they have no reference outside ally no appreciation of the need of redemption
Judaism itself, though the last is evidently a or of the contrast between Christian and
difficulty to him (pp. 253, 261, 262). heathen life. This we must ascribe in great
(3) The Worship of Jesus as God and the measure to the misfortune of his early train-
Adoration of the Martyrs are the great objects ing, to the Arianism of his teachers, and the
of Julian's attacks. His argument is partly unloveliness and unlovingness of his early
concerned with the prophecies just quoted, surroundings. Some allowance must also
partly with the N.T. itself. He asserts be made for the corruption and extravagance
that Moses never speaks of " the first-born of some forms of popular religion, and for the
Son of God," while he does speak of " the sons rash and violent acts of fanaticism committed
of God," i.e. the angels, who have charge of by many Christians. The superstitious cultus
different nations (Gen. vi. 2). But Moses of martyrs, for instance, was no doubt dis-
says expressly, " Thou shalt worship the Lord avowed by the highest minds of the 4th cent.,
thy God, and Him only shalt thou serve " such as St. Athanasius and St. Augustine.
(Cyr. ix. p. 290). Even if the prophecy of But in the masses newly converted from
Emmanuel in Is. refers to Jesus, it gives you paganism it formed a natural centre for much
no right to call His mother deoroKos. How of the old superstition and fanaticism (Athan.
could she bear God, being a human creature Or. cont. Arian. ii. 32 August, de Vera
;

like ourselves ? And how is her son the Relig. 55 and esp. cont. Faustum, xx. 21).
;

Saviour when God says, " I am, and there But besides all this there was in the family
is no Saviour beside Me " ? (viii. p. 276). of Constantine generally a hardness and self-
" John began this evil. You have gone on assertion, though accompanied with strong
and added the worship of other dead men to religious pressure, which made them inacces-
that of the first dead man. You have filled sible to Christian feeling on the subject of sin.
all things with tombs and sepulchres ;though The members of it believed strongly in their
Jesus speaks of '
whited sepulchres full of providential vocation to take a great part in re-
dead men's bones and all uncleanness " (p. ligious questions, but were very rarely troubled
'

335)- " Why, then, do you bow before by scruples as to their personal unworthiness.
tombs ? The Jews did it, according to Julian's own character, as we have seen, was
Isaiah, to obtain visions in dreams, and four specially inconsistent, but its ruling element
apostles also probably did so after their was self-confidence, which he disguised to
master's death " (p. 339). (The reference is himself as a reliance upon divine direction.
to Is. Ixv. 4, " which remain among the In conclusion, we may draw attention tb some
graves and lodge among the monuments " of Julian's
:
admissions. He accepts the
the words Si ivOirvia are added in the Greek account of the Gospel miracles. He rejects
version.) In his letter to the Alexandrians the Gnostic interpretation of St. John, which
he puts with equal force the folly of adoring a separated the Word of God from the Christ.
man, and not adoring the sun and the moon, He witnesses to the common use of the term
especially the former, the great sun, the OeordKos long before the Nestorian troubles.
living, animated, intelligent, and beneficent His remarks about martyr-worship and the
image of the intelligible or spiritual Father adoration of the cross have some importance
{Ep. 51, p. 434). It is strange to find this as facts in the history of Christian worship.
slighting disregard for men as objects of wor- On the Coins of Julian see D. C. B. (4-
ship in one who assumed that he was a vol. ed.) s.v. We conclude that from policy
champion of pure Hellenism, especially in an Julian did not make any general issue of coins
emperor who succeeded a long line of deified with heathen inscriptions or strongly marked
emperors. A great deal of his dislike to what heathen symbols which would have shocked
he considered the Christian doctrine arose, his Christian subjects. The statements of
doubtless, from aristocratic pride. He looked Socrates and Sozomen are in perfect harmony
down upon Christ as a Galilean peasant, a with this conclusion. [j-w.]
subject of Augustus Caesar (Cyr. vi. p. 213). Julianus (105) Sabas, Oct. 18, an anchorite,
"It is hardly three hundred years since He whose history Theodoret tells. Sabas or
began to be talked about. During all His life Sabbas, says Theodoret, was a title of venera-
He did nothing worth recording, unless any tion, meaning an elder, corresponding with
one reckons it among very great acts to have "abbas" or father, commonly applied to
cured halt and blind people, and to exorcize anchorites in the East. His cave was in
demoniacs in the villages of Bethsaida and Osrhoene he practised extraordinary ascetic-
;

Bethany " (vi. p. 191). He looked upon ism and endured extremes of heat and fatigue.
Christians as parvenus who had assumed a In 372, on the expulsion of Meletius, bp. of
position of power for which they were not Antioch, the triumphant Arian party gave
fitted, and exercised it wantonly in destroying out that Julian had embraced their views;
temples and prosecuting their own heretics, whereupon Acacius (subsequently bp. of
etc. " Jesus and Paul never taught you Berrhoea), accompanied by Asterius, went to
this. They never expected that Christians Julian and induced him to visit Antioch,
would fill so important a place, and were where his presence exposed the slander and
satisfied with converting a few maidservants encouraged the Catholics. He returned to
and slaves, and by their means to get hold of his cave and there died. Theod. H. E. iii.
their mistresses, and men like Cornelius and 19, iv. 24 Hist. Religios. No. ii.
;
Menol.
;

Sergius. If under the reigns of Tiberius and Grace. Sirlet. Ceillier, viii. 238
;
Wright, Cat.
;

Claudius they have succeeded in convincing Syr. MSS. ii. 700, iii. 1084, 1090. [c.h.]
602 JULIUS JULIUS
Julius (5), bp. of Rome after Marcus, council in the church of the presbyter Vito at
Feb. 6, 337, to Apr. 12, 352, elected after a Rome, apparently in Nov. 341, Athanasius
vacancy of four months. His pontificate is being stated to have been then a year and a
specially notable for his defence of Athanasius, half in Rome. It was attended by more than
and for the canons of Sardica enacted during 50 bishops. Old and new accusations were
it. When Julius became pope, Athanasius considered the Acts of the council of Tyre,
;

was in exile at Treves after his first deposition and those of the inquiry in the Mareotis about
by the council of Tyre, having been banished the broken chalice, which had been left at
by Constantine the Great in 336. Constan- Rome by the Eusebian envoys two years
tine, dying on Whitsunday 337, was succeeded before, were produced ; witnesses were heard
by his three sons, by whose permission Athan- in disproof of the charges and in proof of
asius returned to his see. But the Eusebians Eusebian atrocities ; and the result was the
continuing their machinations, the restoration complete acquittal of Athanasius and con-
of Athanasius was declared invalid ; and one firmation of the communion with him, which
Pistus was set up as bp. of Alexandria in his had never been discontinued by the Roman
stead. A deputation was now sent to Rome church. Marcellus of Ancyra, who had been
to induce Julius to declare against Athanasius deposed and banished on a charge of heresy
and acknowledge Pistus ; but having failed by a Eusebian council at Constantinople in
to convince the pope, desired him to convene 336 and had been 15 months in Rome, was
a general council at which he should adjudi- declared orthodox on the strength of his
cate upon the charges against Athanasius. confession of faith which satisfied the council.
Socrates (H. E. ii. 11) and Sozomen (H. E. Other bishops and priests, from Thrace,.^
iii. 7) state that Eusebius wrote to Julius Coelesyria, Phoenicia, Palestine, and Egypt,
requesting him to judge the case. But this is are said by Julius in his subsequent synodal
not asserted by Julius, and is improbable. letter to have been present to complain of
Julius undertook to hold a council wherever injuries suffered from the Eusebian party.
Athanasius chose, and seems to have sent a Socrates (H. E. ii. 15) and Sozomen (//. E.
synodical letter to the Eusebians apprising iii. 8) say that all the deposed bishops were
them of his intention. The dates of the events reinstated by Julius in virtue of the preroga-
that followed are not without difficulty. tive of the Roman see, and that he wrote
Early in 340 Pistus had been given up as vigorous letters in their defence, reprehending
the rival bishop, and one Gregory, a Cappa- the Eastern bishops and summoning some of
docian, violently intruded by Philagrius the the accusers to Rome. But there seems much
prefect of Egypt into the see ; and the exaggeration here. Paul certainly, the de-
Lenten services had been the occasion of posed patriarch of Constantinople (whom
atrocious treatment of the Catholics of Alex- Eusebius had succeeded and who is mentioned
andria. Athanasius, having concealed him- by Socrates and Sozomen among the successful
self for a time in the neighbourhood and appellants), was not restored till the death of
prepared an encyclic in which he detailed the his rival in 342, and then only for a time and
proceedings, seems to have departed for Rome not through the action of Julius; nor did
about Easter 340, and to have been welcomed Athanasius regain his see till 346. Indeed,
there by Julius, who, after his arrival, sent Sozomen himself acknowledges (iii. 10) that
two presbyters, Elpidius and Philoxenes, with Julius effected nothing at the time by his
a letter to Eusebius and his party fixing Dec. letters in favour of Athanasius and Paul, and
340, at Rome, for the proposed synod. The consequently referred their cause to the
Eusebians refused to come, and detained the emperor Constans. Julius's real attitude and
envoys of Julius beyond the time fixed. action are best seen in the long letter he
Elpidius and Philoxenes did not return to addressed to the Easterns at the desire of the
Rome till Jan. 341, bringing then a letter, the Roman council, which has been preserved
purport of which is gathered from the reply entire by Athanasius {Apol. contra Arian.
of Julius to be mentioned presently. Julius 2 1 -36). He begins by animadverting strongly
suppressed this letter for some time, hoping on the tone of the letter brought to him by his
that the arrival of some Eusebians in Rome envoys, which was such, he says, that when
might spare him the pain of making it public, he had at last reluctantly shewn it to others
and in this hope he also deferred the assem- they could hardly believe it genuine. His
bling of the council. But no one came. The own action had been complained of in the
Eusebians now shewed themselves by no letter. He therefore both defends himself and
means prepared to submit to his adjudication, recriminates " You object to having your
:

but took advantage of the dedication of a new own synodal judgment [that of Tyre] ques-
cathedral at Antioch to hold a council of their tioned in a second council. But this is no
own there, known as the " Dedication coun- unprecedented proceeding. The council of
cil " (probably in Aug. 341) and attended by Nice permitted the re-examination of synod-
97 bishops. They prepared canons and three ical Acts. If your own judgment were right,
creeds, designed to convince the Western you should have rejoiced in the opportunity
church of their orthodoxy, confirmed the of having it confirmed ; and how can you, of
sentence of the council of Tyre against Athan- all men, complain, when it was at the instance
asius, and endeavoured to prevent his restora- of your own emissaries, when worsted by the
tion by a canon with retrospective force, advocates of Athanasius, that the Roman
debarring even from a hearing any bishop or council was convened ? You certainly cannot
priest who should have officiated after a plead the irreversibility of a synodical de-
canonical deposition. Julius meanwhile had cision, having yourselves reversed even the
made public their letter, and, not yet knowing judgment of Nice in admitting Arians to
of the proceedings at Antioch, assembled his communion. If on this ground you complain

JULIUS JULIUS 603


of my receiving Athanasius, much more may unwilling to write to us [i.e. to the Roman
I complain of your asking me to acknowledge church] especially about the Alexandrian see ?
Pistus, a man alleged by the envoys of Athan- Can you be ignorant that this is the custom ;

asius to have been condemned as an Arian at that we should be written to in the first place,
Nice and admitted by your own representa- so that hence [i.e. from this church] what is
tives to have been ordained by one Secundus, just may be defined ? Wherefore, if a sus-
who had been so condemned. It must have picion against the bishop had arisen there
been from chagrin at being so utterly refuted [i.e. in Alexandria], it ought to have been
in his advocacy of Pistus that your emissary referred hither to our church. But now,
Macarius fled by night, though in weak health, having never informed us of the case, they
from Rome." He next refers sarcastically wish us to accept their condemnation, in
to an allegation of his correspondents as to which we had no part. Not so do the ordin-
the equality of all bishops, made either in ances of St. Paul direct; not so do the Fathers
justification of their having judged a bp. of teach this is pride, and a new ambition.
: I
Alexandria or in deprecation of the case being beseech you, hear me gladly. I write this for
referred to Rome. " If, as you write, you the public good for what we have received
:

hold the honour of all bishops to be equal, and from the blessed Peter I signify to you."
unaffected by the greatness of their sees, this This language will hardly bear the inferences
view comes ill from those who have shewn of Socrates iii. 8, 17) and of Sozomen (iii. 10),
themselves so anxious to get translated from that, according to church law, enactments
their own small sees to greater ones." He made without the consent of the bp. of Rome
here alludes to Eusebius himself, who had were held invalid. It certainly implies no
passed from Berytus to Nicomedia, and claim to exclusive jurisdiction over all
thence to Constantinople. Having treated as churches. All that Julius insists on is that
frivolous their plea of the short time allowed charges against the bishops of great sees ought,
them to get to the Roman council, he meets according to apostolic tradition and canonical
their further complaint that his letter of rule, to be referred to the whole episcopate ;

summons had been addressed only to Eusebius and that, in the case of a bp. of Alexandria at
and his party, instead of the whole Eastern least, custom gave the initiative of proceedings
episcopate. " I naturally wrote to those who to the bp. of Rome. In this reference to
had written to me." He adds emphatically, custom he probably has in view the case of
"Though I alone wrote, I did so in the name Dionysius of Alexandria, the charges against
of, and as expressing the sentiments of, all whom had been laid before Dionysius of Rome.
the Italian bishops." He then justifies at The allegation in the earlier part of his letter
length his action and that of the Roman of the fathers of Nice having sanctioned the
council. The letters of accusation against reconsideration of the decisions of synods is
Athanasius had been from strangers living at a more difficult to account for. He may be
distance, and contradicted one another : the alluding to the action of the Nicene council *
testimonies in his favour from his own people, in entertaining the case of Arius after he had
who knew him well, had been clear and been synodically condemned at Alexandria.
consistent. He exposes the false charges The action of pope Julius appears open to no
about the murder of Arsenius and the broken exception, for if the synod consisted of
chalice, and the unfairness of the Mareotic Westerns only, that was because the Easterns
inquiry. He contrasts the conduct of Athan- refused to attend it, though Julius had
asius, who had come of his own accord to convened it at the suggestion of their own
Rome to court investigation, with the un- emissaries and, after all, the Roman synod
;

willingness of his accusers to appear against only confirmed the continuance of communion
him. He dwells on the uncanonical intrusion with Eastern prelates whom it deemed un-
of Gregory the Cappadocian by military force justly condemned. It had no power to do
into the Alexandrian see, and on the atrocities more. Still, the action of Julius may have
committed to enforce acceptance of him. " It served as a step towards subsequent papal
is you," he adds, "who have set at nought claims of a more advanced kind and it prob
;

the canons, and disturbed the church's peace ;


ably suggested the canons of Sardica, pregnant
not we, as you allege, who have entertained a with results, which will be noticed presently.
just appeal, and acquitted the innocent." Athanasius remained still in Rome, till, in
After briefly justifying the acquittal of Mar-
cellus from the charge of heresy, he calls upon
his fourth year of residence there
in the summer of 343 — —
probably
he received a summons
those to whom he writes to repudiate the base from Constans, now sole emperor of the West,
conspiracy of a few and so remedy the wrong to meet him at Milan (Athan. Apol. ad Imp.
done. He points out what would have been Constantium, 4), about the holding of a new
the proper course of procedure in case of any council, at which both East and West should
just cause of suspicion against the bishops. be fully represented. With the concurrence
This part of his letter is important, as shewing of the Eastern emperor Constantius, this
his own view of his position in relation to the council was summoned at the Moesian town
church at large. " If," he says, "they were of Sardica on the confines of their empires,
guilty, as you say they were, they ought to probably towards the end of 343. The
have been judged canonically, not after your scheme of united action failed, the Eastern
method. AH of us [i.e. the whole episcopate] bishops holding a separate synod at Philip-
ought to have been written to, that so justice popolis. The rest met at Sardica under the
might be done by all. For they were bishops * This indeed was one of the purposes which the
who suffered these things, and bishops of no emperor had at heart in convening it. Just as the
ordinary sees, but of such as were founded by synod of Aries had also met by his orders to recon-
sider the acquittal of St. Caecilian, decreed in the
apostles personally. Why, then, were you previous synod of Rome under Melchiades. e.s.ff.
604 JULIUS JULIUS
venerable Hosius of Cordova. In some said It has seemed good to us (placuit) that
:

editions of the Acts of the council he is desig- if any bishop has been accused, and the
nated one of the legates of the Roman see. assembled bishops of his own region have
But this designation seems due only to the deposed him, and if he has appealed to the
desire, which appears in other cases, of assign- bishop of the Roman church, and if the latter
ing the presidency of all councils to the pope. is willing to hear him, and considers it just
According to Athanasius (Apol. contra that the inquiry should be renewed, let him
Arian. 50), Julius was represented by two deign to write to the bishops of a neighbouring
presbyters, Archidamus and Philoxenes, whose province, that they may diligently inquire
names appear in the signatures to the synodal into everything, and give their sentence
letter of the council after that of Hosius. according to the truth. But if the appellant
Hosius undoubtedly presided, and there is no in his supplication should have moved the
sign of his having done so as the pope's deputy Roman bishop to send a presbyter [al. pres-
either in the Acts of the council or in the byters] 'de suo latere,' it shall be in his [i.e.
letter sent to Julius at its close. Nor can the the Roman bishop's] power to do whatever he
initiative of the council be assigned to Julius, thinks right. And if he should decide to send
for this is inconsistent with the statement of persons having his own authority to sit in
Athanasius, who calls God to witness that judgment with the bishops, it shall be at his
when summoned to Milan he was entirely option to do so. But if he should think the
ignorant of the purpose of the summons, but bishops sufficient for terminating the business,
found that it was because " certain bishops " he shall do what approves itself to his most
there had been moving Constans to induce wise judgment." * In these canons we notice^
Constantius to allow a general council to be firstly, they were designed to provide what
assembled (Apol. ad Imp. Constantium, 4). recent events had shewn the need of, and what
If Julius had been the mover, it is unlikely the existing church system did not adequately
that Athanasius, who was with him at Rome, furnish —
a recognized court of appeal in
would have been ignorant of the purpose of ecclesiastical causes. The canons of Nice had
his summons or would have spoken only of provided none beyond the provincial synod,
" certain bishops." The council was con- for beyond that the only strictly canonical
vened by the emperors on their own authority, appeal was to a general council, which could
to review the whole past proceedings, whether be but a rare event and was dependent on
at Tyre, Antioch, or Rome, without asking the the will of princes. The need was felt of a
pope's leave or inviting him to take the lead. readier remedy. Secondly, this remedy was
It confirmed and promulgated anew all the provided by giving the Roman bishop the
decisions of the Roman council, decreed the power to cause the judgment of provincial
restoration of the banished orthodox prelates, synods to be reconsidered but only on the
;

and excommunicated the Eusebian intruders. appeal of the aggrieved party, and only in
It also passed 21 canons of discipline, 3 certain prescribed ways. He might refuse to
being of special historic importance. The interfere, thus confirming the decision of the
extant Acts of the council give them thus. provincial synod or he might constitute the
;

Canon III. (al. III., IV.) " Bp. Osius said :bishops of a neighbouring province as a court
This also is necessary to be added, that of appeal he might further, if requested and
;

bishops pass not from their own province to if he thought it necessary, send one or more
another in which there are bishops, unless presbyters as his legates to watch the pro-
perhaps on the invitation of their brethren ceedings, or appoint representatives of himself
there, that we may not seem to close the gate to sit as assessors in the court. But he was
of charity. And, if in any province a bishop not empowered to interfere unless appealed
have a controversy against a brother bishop, to, or to summon the case to Rome to be
let neither of the two call upon a bishop from heard before himself in synod still less, of
;

another province to take cognizance of it. course, to adjudicate alone. Thirdly, it is


But, should any one of the bishops have been evident that this course was sanctioned for the
condemned in any case, and think that he first time at Sardica. The canons, on the face
has good cause for a reconsideration of it, let of them, were not a confirmation of a tradi-
us (if it please you) honour the memory of the tional prerogative of Rome. The words of
blessed Apostle St. Peter, so that Julius, the Hosius were, " Let us, if it please you, honour
Roman bishop, be written to by those who the memory of the blessed Apostle St. Peter,"
have examined the case ;and, if he should i.e. by conceding this power to the Roman
judge that the trial ought to be renewed, let bishop. Fourthly, the power in question was
it be renewed, and let him appoint judges. definitely given only to the then reigning
But, if he should decide that the case is such pope, Julius, who is mentioned by name ; and
that what has been done ought not to be it has hence been supposed that it was not
reconsidered, what he thus decides shall be meant to be given his successors (cf. Richer.
confirmed. Si hoc omnibus placet ? The Hist. Condi. General, t. i. c. 3, § 4)- But the
synod replied, Placet." Canon IV. [al. V.) arrangement was probably at any rate in-
" Bp. Gaudentius said Let it, if it please you,
: tended to be permanent, since the need for it
be added to this decree that when any bishop and the grounds assigned for it were per-
has been deposed by the judgment of bishops manent. Fifthly, since it was the causes of
who dwell in neighbouring places, and he has
• The editions of these canons, extant in Greek and
proclaimed his intention of taking his case to
I,atin translations, vary in their wording and ar-
Rome, no other bishop shall by any means be rangement of them, but all agree in the drift as given
ordained to his see till the cause has been above. Doubts have been entertained of their
determined in the judgment of the Roman authenticity, but they are generally accepted. See
bishop." Canon V. {al. VII.) " Bp. Osius Gieseler, Eccl. Hist. 2nd period, div. i, c. iii. note 7.
JULIUS JULIUS 605
Eastern bishops that led to the enactment, rather than requested ("tua autem excellens
the canons were probably meant to apply to prudentia disponere debet, ut per tua scripta,"
the whole church, and not to the Western only. etc.), to inform the bishops of Italy, Sardinia,
The Greek canonists, Balsamon and Zonaras, and Sicily of what had been done, that they
maintain their narrower scope and it is true
; might know with whom to hold communion.
that, the council having consisted of Westerns A list is appended of those excommunicated
only, they were never accepted by the churches by the synod. The whole drift of the letter
of the East. But though the council of is inconsistent with the council having been
Sardica was not in fact oecumenical, the convened by the pope himself, or held in his
emperors had intended it to be so, and the name, or considered dependent on him for
Roman canonists call it so in virtue of the ratification of its decrees. He is not even
general summons. They, however, regard it charged with the promulgation of thera,
as an appendage to that of Nice and prob-
; except to bishops immediately under his
ably its canons were from the first added at jurisdiction. The only expression pointing
Rome to those of Nice as supplementary to to his pre-eminent position is that it would
them, since in the well-known case of Apiarius, appear to be best and exceedingly fitting
the African presbyter (a.d. 417), pope Zosimus ("optimum et valde congruentissimum") that
quoted them as Nicene and pope Innocent
; "the head, that is the see of St. Peter,"
(a.d. 402) seems previously to have done the should be informed respecting every single
same in defending his appellate jurisdiction province. Nor is there in the letter to the
over Gaul. In the African case the error was Alexandrians, or in the encyclic to all bishops,
eventually exposed by reference to the copies any reference to him as having initiated or
of the Nicene canons preserved at Constan- taken part in the council only in the latter a
;

tinople and Alexandria, and the Africans passing allusion to the previous council which
thereupon distinctly repudiated the claims of he (" comminister noster dilectissimus") had
Rome which rested upon this false foundation. convened at Rome. The letter to Julius is
But Boniface and Celestine, the successors of signed, first by Hosius, and then by 58 other
Zosimus, refer to these canons as Nicene, as bishops, being probably those present at the
did Leo I. in 449 ; and this continued to be close of the council. But as many as 284 are
the Roman position. The persistence of the given by Athanasius (Apol. contra Arian.
popes in quoting them as Nicene after the 49, 50) as having assented to its decrees and
mistake had been discovered is an early signed its encyclic letter. They include, from
instance of Roman unfairness in support of various parts of the West with a few from the
papal claims. It is further a significant fact East 78, from Gaul and Britain 34, from Africa
that in some Roman copies the name of 36, from Egypt 94, from Italy 15, from
Sylvester was substituted for that of Julius, Cyprus 12, from Palestine 15.
as if with an intention of throwing their date Not till Oct. 346, some three years after the
back to the Nicene period. The scope also of council, was Athanasius allowed to return to
the canons came in time to be unduly extend- his see. Before that he again visited Rome,
ed, being made to involve the power of the and was again cordially received by Julius,
pope to summon at his will all cases to be who wrote a letter of congratulation to the
heard before himself at Rome. Oiu: proper clergy and laity of Alexandria, remarkable for
conclusion seems to be that, though probably its warmth of feeling and beauty of expression.
intended by their framers to bind the whole He regards the return at last of their beloved
church, their authority was not really ade- bishop after such prolonged affliction as a
quate to the purpose and that the popes
; reward granted to their unwavering affection
afterwards appealed to them unfairly in sup- for him, shewn by their continual prayers and
port of their claims by misrepresenting both their letters of sympathy that had consoled
their authority and their scope. his exile, as well as to his own faithfulness.
At the close of its sittings the council of He dwells on the holy character of Athanasius,
Sardica addressed letters to the two emperors, his resoluteness in defence of the faith, his
to Julius, to the church of Alexandria, to the endurance of persecution, his contempt of
bishops of Egypt and Libya, and an encyclic death and danger. He congratulates them
"to all bishops." In that to Julius the on receiving him back all the more glorious
reason he alleged for not attending viz. the — for his long trials and fully proved innocence.
necessity of remaining in Rome to guard He pictures vividly his welcome home by

against the schemes of heretics is allowed as rejoicing crowds at Alexandria. The letter
sufficient; and he is presumed to have been is the more admirable for the absence of all
present in spirit. The documents sent him bitterness towards the persecutors.
and the oral report of his emissaries would The only further notice of Julius is of his
inform him of what had been done, but it was having received the recantation of Valens and
thought fit to send him also a brief summary : Ursacius, two notable opponents of Athan-
The most religious emperors had permitted the asius who had been condemned at Sardica.
council to discuss anew all past proceedings, They had already recanted before a synod at
and hence the following questions had been Milan, and written a pacific letter to Athan-
considered: (i)The definition of the true asius ; but went also of their own accord,
faith; {2) The condemnation or acquittal of A.D. 347, to Rome, and presented a humble
those whom the Eusebians had deposed {3);
apologetic letter to Julius, and were admitted
The charges against the Eusebians themselves to communion (Athan. Hist. Arian. ad Mon-
of having unjustly condemned and persecuted achos, 26 Hilar. Fragni. i.).
; Their profession
the orthodox. For full information as to the however (in which they owned the falsity
council's decisions he is referred to the letters of their charges against Athanasius and
written to the emperors and he is directed,
;
renounced Arian heresy), proved insincere.
606 Julius JUNILIUS
For when, after the defeat of Constans in 350 are his words) because the precedence was not
and the defeat of Maxentius in 351, the tide given to them as representing Rome, and
of imperial favour began to turn, they recanted because Leo's letter was not read, is not in
their recantation, which they said had been harmony with the acta of the council (see
made only under fear of Constans. But Tillem. xv. notes 26 and 27, p. 904). They
Julius, who died Apr. 12, 352, was spared the undoubtedly did take part in the proceedings
troublous times which ensued. The fresh of the council, and Julius ranked after Dios-
charges now got up, and sent to him and the corus. His interpreter, as he could not speak
emperor, arrived at Rome too late for him to Greek, was Florentius, bp. of Sardis (Labbe,
entertain them. [Liberius.] iv. 122 b). We read that he made several
His only extant writings are the two letters, efforts to resist Dioscorus, especially urging
to the Eusebians andthe Alexandrians, referred that Leo's letter should be read, but he does
to above. Ten decreta are ascribed to him in not seem to have been so prominent in
the collections of Gratian and Ivo. One is opposition as Hilarus the deacon {ib. 128 b,
interesting for its allusion to certain usages in 149 B, 302 d). Leo, however, expresses high
the celebration of the Eucharist — viz. using commendation of the conduct of his legates
milk, or the expressed juice of grapes, instead generally. They protested in the council, he
of wine; administering the bread dipped in says, and declared that no violence should
the wine, after the manner of the Greeks at the sever them from the truth {Ep. 45, 922). He
present day ; and using a linen cloth soaked speaks to Theodosius, the emperor, of intelli-
in must, reserved through the year and gence having been brought him of the acts of
moistened with water, for each celebration. the synod by the bishop whom he had sent,
All these are condemned, except the use of as well as by the deacon (Ep. xliii. 902) bul'-^ ;

the unfermented juice of the grape, in which this in other letters (xliv. 911, xlv. 919) is
(it is said) is the efficacy of wine, in case corrected by the statement that only Hilarus
of need, if mixed with water, which is declared escaped to Rome. What happened to Julius
always necessary to represent the people, as we do not know, nor do we hear of him sub-
the wine represents the blood of Christ. sequently (Ughelli, Italia Sacra, vi. 272).
J ulius was buried, according to the Liberian Ughelli and Cappelletti (xix. 647, 669) name
and Felician Catalogues, "in coemeterio him Julianus and make him 6th bp. of Puteoli
Calepodii ad Callistum " on the Aurelian between Theodore and Stephen. [c.g.]
Way, where he had built a basilica, [j.b v.] — JuniliUS ('loi^i'tXos, Junillus), an African
Julius (9) (Julianus), bp. of Puteoli (Gesta by birth, hence commonly known as Junillus
de Nom. Acacii, in Labbe, iv. 1079 d), probably Africanus. He filled for seven years in the
the bp. Julius to whom, a.d. 448, Leo the court of Justinian the important office of
Great entrusted the execution of certain dis- quaestor of the sacred palace, succeeding the
ciplinary measures in the church of Beneven- celebrated Tribonian (Procop. Anecd. c. 20).
tum (Leo Mag. Ep. xix. 736). Certainly he, Procopius tells us that Constantine, whom the
with Renatus the presbyter and Hilarus the Acts of the 5th general council shew to have
deacon, carried to Flavian of Constantinople held the office in 553, succeeded on the death
the famous " tome " of St. Leo in June 449, of Junillus, which may therefore be placed a
and acted as his legate in the " Robber " year or two earlier. Junillus, though a lay-
council of Ephesus (Leo Mag. Ep. xxxiii. 866, man, took great interest in theological studies.
Migne). The legates are described by Leo as A deputation of African bishops visiting
sent de latere meo (Ep. xxxii. 859, xxxiv. Constantinople, one of them, Primasius of
870. He was not the first pope to use this Adrumetuni, inquired of his distinguished
phrase ; see the Ballerini in loc. Migne). countryman, Junillus, who among the Greeks
Because Julius appears in the " acta " of the was distinguished as a theologian, to which
council most frequently as Julianus he has Junillus replied that he knew one Paul [Paul
been confused with Julian of Cos. That it OF Nisibis], a Persian by race, who had been
was our Julius who was the papal legate at educated in the school of the Syrians at
Ephesus is proved by Leo's letter to the latter Nisibis, where theology was taught by public
(xxxiv. 870) and by the fact that the legate masters in the same systematic manner as the
did not know Greek, which J ulian of Cos secular studies of grammar and rhetoric else-
certainly did (see Julianus (27) ; Labbe, iv.where. Junillus had an introduction to the
121 B; Tillem. xv. note 21, pp. 901-902). Scriptures by this Paul, which, on the soli-
Evagrius (H. E. i. x.), Prosper (Chron), and citation of Primasius, he translated into Latin,
Gesta de Nom. Acac. (in Labbe, iv. 1079 d), call breaking it up into question and answer.
the papal legate Julius, not Julianus (see also Kihn identifies this work of Paul with that
Marianus Scotus, Chron. ann. 450 in Patr. Lat. which Ebedjesu (Asseman. Bibl. Or. IIL i. 87 ;

cxlvii. 726). On Quesnel's hypothesis, that Badger, Nestorians, ii. 369) calls aschelmonu- M
Julius and not Renatus died on the road to tho desurtho. The work of Junilius was called
Ephesus, and that Julian took his place, cf. " Instituta regularia divinae legis," but is
Tillemont, I.e., and Hefele, Concil. ii. 368, 369.
connnonly known as " De partibus divinae
On their arrival at Ephesus the legates lodged legis," a title which really belongs only to
with Flavian on the ground that they had
;
chap. i. It has been often printed in libraries
lived with him and been tampered with by of the Fathers (e.g. Galland, vol. xii. Migne, ;

him (crvviKpoTTidriaav, Lat. mimerati), Euty- vol. Ixviii.). The best ed., for which 13 MSS.
ches took exception to their impartiality as were collated, is by Prof. Kihn of Wiirzburg
judges (Labbe, iv. 149 b). (Theodor von Mopsuestia, Freiburg, 1880), a
The assertion of Liberatus {Breviarium, c. work admirable for its thorough investigations,
xii.) that the Roman legates could not take and throwing much light on Junilius.
"
pairt in the council (" assidere non passi sunt The introduction does not, as has been
JUNILIUS JUSTINIANUS 1. 60?

often assumed, represent an African school of A commentary on Gen. i. wrongly ascribed


theology, but the Syrian and Kihn conclu-
;
to Junilius is now generally attributed to
sively shews that (although possibly Junilius Bede. [g.s.]
was not aware of it himself) it is all founded Justina (5), empress, second wife of Valen-
on the teaching of Theodore of Mopsuestia. tinian I., a Sicilian by birth, and, teste Zosimus
Junilius divides the books of Scripture into (iv. 19 and 43), the widow of Magnentius,
two classes. The first, which alone he calls killed in 353. Valentinian may have divorced
Canonical Scripture, are of perfect authority ;
his first wife {Chron. Pasch. 302I, and then
the second added by many are of secondary espoused Justina, probably in 368.
(mediae) authority all other books are of no
;
She was an Arian, but during her husband's
authority. The first class consists of (i) His- lifetime concealed her opinions (Ruf. H. E.
torical Books : Pentateuch, Josh., Judg., Ruth, ii. 15, in Migne, Patr. Lat. xxi. 523). She,
Sam., and Kings., and in N.T. the four Gospels however, endeavoured to prevent him from
and Acts (2) Prophetical (in which what is allowing St. Martin of Tours to enter his
;

evidently intended for a chronological arrange- presence (Sulp. Sev. Dial. ii. in ib. xx. 205).
ment is substituted for that more usual) After her husband's death she at once used
:

Ps., Hos., Is., Jl., Ob., Jon., Mic,


Am., her influence as mother of the infant em-
Nah., Hab., Zeph., Jer., Ezk., Dan., Hag., peror Valentinian II. to advance the inter-
Zech., and Mai. (he says that John's Apoca- ests of her sect, and soon came into colUsion
lypse is much doubted of amongst the with St. Ambrose. Their first contest was
Easterns) ; (3) Proverbial or parabolic : the probably c. 380, when St. Ambrose was sum-
Prov. of Solomon and the Book of Jesus the moned to Sirmium to take part in the consecra-
Son of Sirach (4) Doctrinal: Eccles., the 14
;
tion of Anemius as bishop of that see, the
epp. of St. Paul in the order now usual, empress being desirous that the new bishop
including Heb., I. Pet., and I. Jn. In his should be consecrated by the Arians (Paulinus,
second class he counts (i) Historical: Chron., Vita S. Ambrosii, in ib. xiv. 30).
Job, Esdras (no doubt including Neh.), After the murder of Gratian and the seizure
Judith, Est., and Mace; (3) Proverbial: by Maximus of Spain, Gaul, and Britain in
Wisdom and Cant.; (4) Doctrinal: the Epp. 383, Justina (who, with her infant son, was
of Jas., II. Pet., Jude, II. III. Jn. Lam. residing in the imperial palace at Milan) had
and Bar. were included in Jer. Tobit is not recourse to her former opponent St. Ambrose.
mentioned, but is quoted in a later part of the She placed her son in his hands, and induced
treatise. Kihn is no doubt right in regarding him to undertake the delicate task of going
its omission as due to the accidental error of as ambassador to Maximus, to persuade him
an early transcriber for no writer of the time
;
to be contented with Gratian's provinces and
would have designedly refused to include to leave Valentinian in undisturbed possession
Tobit even in his list of deuterocanonical of Italy, Africa, and Western lUyricum (St.
books. Junilius gives as a reason for not Ambrose, Epp. 20, 21, 24 Id. de Obitu
;

reckoning the books of the second class as Valentiniani, 1182 in Patr. Lat. xvi. looi,
canonical that the Hebrews make this differ- 1007, 1035, 1368). His mission was success-
ence, as Jerome and others testify. This is ful, at any rate for a time but the ungrateful
;

clearly incorrect with regard to several of Justina assailed him at Easter 385 with the
them, and one is tempted to think {pace Kihn) object of obtaining a church at Milan for the
that Junilius himself added this reference to use of her fellow-Arians. For an account of
Jerome and did not find it in his Greek this memorable struggle see Ambrosius. By
original. The low place assigned to Job and a constitution {Cod. Theod. xvi. i, 4), dated
Cant, accords with the estimate formed by Jan. 21, 386, and drawn up at her direction
Theodore of Mopsuestia. Junilius quotes as (Soz. H. E. vii. 13), those who held the
Peter's a passage from his second epistle, opinions sanctioned by the council of Arimi-
which he had not admitted into his list of nuni were granted the right of meeting for
canonical books. He describes Ps., Eccles., public worship. Catholics being forbidden
and Job as written in metre (see Bickell, under pain of death to offer opposition or to
Metrices Biblicae Regulae). The work of endeavour to get the law repealed.
Junilius presents a great number of other When danger again threatened, Justina
points of interest, e.g. his answer, ii. 29, to again had recourse to Ambrose's services.
the question how we prove the books of Scrip- After Easter 387 he was sent to Trier to ask
ture to have been written by divine inspiration. that the body of Gratian should be restored
The publication of the work Kihn assigns to to his brother and to avert Maximus's threat-
551, in which year the Chronicle of Victor ened invasion of Italy {Ep. 24). His mission
Tununensis records the presence at Constanti- was unsuccessful Maximus crossed the Alps
;

nople of the African bishops Reparatus, in the autumn and made himsell master of
Firmus, Primasius, and Verecundus. He Italy without striking a blow. Valentinian
thinks that Junilius probably met Paul of and his mother and sisters fled by sea to
Nisibis there as early as 543. We do not Thessalonica, whence she sent to Theodosius
venture to oppose the judgment of one imploring his help. Zosimus (iv. 44) narrates
entitled to speak with so high authority how she overcame his reluctance by the
;

but we should have thought that the intro- charms of her daughter, the beautiful Galla,
duction into the West of this product of the whose hand paid for his assistance. (See Due
Nestorian school of theology took place at an de Broglie, UEglise et I'emp. iii. 228.) In 388,
earlier period of the controversy about the the year of her son's restoration, Justina died
Three Chapters than 551. It is not unlikely (Soz. H. E. vii. 14 Ruf. H. E. ii. 17).
;
[f.d.]
that Primasius paid earlier visits to Constan- Justinianus (6) I., Roman emperor (275-565).
tinople than that of which we have evidence. I. Life and Character. —
J ustinian was born
608 JUSTINIANUS I. JUSTINIANUS I.

most probably in 483 at Tauresium, on the forthe East and the other for the West.
borders of Illyricum and Macedonia, a spot Several hymns still used in the orthodox
probably a little S. of Uskiub, the ancient Eastern church are ascribed to his pen, and
Scupi (see Procop. A edif. iv. i, and Tozer, High-he is the author of a treatise against the
lands of European Turkey, ii. p. 370). After his Monophysites, which Cardinal Mai has pub-
accession he built at his birthplace a city which lished. The records of his government and
he named Justiniana Prima and made the administration shew that he possessed great
capital of the province and seat of an arch- ingenuity and enterprise but the enterprise
;

bishop. [The tale regarding his Slavonic was often prompted more by vanity and lust
origin started by Alemanni in his notes to the of power than by regard to the welfare of his
Anecdota of Procopius seems to be baseless ;
people, and his ingenuity was not guided by
see art. in Eng. Hist. Rev. Oct. 1887, by the prudence or by a solid knowledge of the
present writer.] Early in life he came to economical conditions of prosperity. There
Constantinople, and attached himself to his was much more cleverness than wisdom about
uncle Justin, who, serving in the imperial him we see in his policy few indications of
;

guards under the emperors Zeno and Anas- deep and statesmanlike foresight. The chief
tasius, had risen to high place. At Constan- feature of his character is his extraordinary
tinople Justinian diligently studied law, theo- industry. He seemed to live for work, and
logy, and general literature, and the influence toiled harder than any of his own clerks. He
of his uncle doubtless procured him employ- was naturally abstemious and regular in life,
ment in the civil service of the state. When observing the church fasts very strictly, able
Justinian was 35, the emperor Anastasius was to go long without food, taking little sleep,
succeeded by Justin, an illiterate soldier, and spending most of his time, when not^
weakened by age, to whom the help of his more actually giving audiences, in pacing up and
active nephew was almost indispensable. down the rooms of the palace listening to
Ecclesiastical affairs and the general adminis- readers or dictating to an amanuensis. He
tration of the state fell under the control of cared little for vulgar pleasures (though he
Justinian. He became co-emperor in 527, shewed an excessive partiality for the blue
and on Justin's death, a month later, assumed faction, he does not appear to have been
without question the sole sovereignty of the personally addicted to the games of the circus),
Roman world, retaining it till his death in 565, and yielded to no influences except those of
at the age of 82, when he was peaceably suc- his wife Theodora. We are told that he was
ceeded by his nephew Justin II. —
easy of access a rare merit in the despotic
In 526 he married Theodora, a woman of centre of a highly formal court pleasant and
singular beauty, and still more remarkable reassuring in manner, but also deceitful and

charms of manner and intellect, said to have capable of treachery and ingratitude. How
been a native of Cyprus and a comedian. The far this ingratitude was in the most notable
gossip of the time, starting from this un- case, that of Belisarius, excused by apprehen-
doubted fact, has accumulated in the A necdota, sions of danger, is a problem not wholly solved
or unpublished memoirs, ascribed to, and no or soluble. Wantonly cruel he does not seem
doubt written by (although there has been a to have been, and on several occasions shewed
controversy on the point), Procopius, a variety an unexpected clemency, but he shrank from
of scandalous tales regarding her earlier career. no severities that his intellect judged useful.
[Theodora.] She soon acquired an almost In person he was well formed, rather above
unbounded dominion over Justinian's mind, the middle height, with a ruddy and smiling
and was commonly regarded as the source of countenance. Besides his effigy on coins, we
many of his schemes and enterprises. She died have two probably contemporary portraits
in 548, and he did not marry again. —
among the mosaics of Ravenna one in the
Most of what we know directly about apse of the church of San Vitale, built in his
Justinian comes from Procopius, which does reign, in which he appears among a number of
not diminish the difficulty of forming a com- other figures; the other now preserved in the
prehensive and consistent view of his abilities noble church of Sant' ApoUinare in Urbe.
and character. For Procopius wrote of him II. The political events of his reign may be
with servility in his lifetime, and reviled him read in Procopius, Agathias, Theophanes (all
in the Anecdota, a singular book which did not three in the Bonn ed. of the Byzantine histo-
come to light till long afterwards. Setting rians), in the ecclesiastical history of Evagrius,
aside exaggerations in both directions, it may in Gibbon (see cc. xl.-xliii. for a full and
be concluded that Justinian was a man of brilliant picture of Justinian's times), and in
considerable, if not first-rate, abilities. He Le Beau (Histoire du bus empire, vols. viii.
was well educated, according to the ideas and and ix., with St. Martin's notes). Finlay
customs of the time, and more or less conver- {Greece under the Romans, vol. i. of new ed.)
sant with many branches of knowledge. has some valuable remarks, as also Hertzberg,
Procopius accuses him of being a barbarian Griechenland unter der Romer, vol. iii. ; see
both in mind and speech, which probably also Dahn, Prokopios von Caesarea. At
means only that he spoke Greek like an Illy- Justinian's accession the empire was generally
rian provincial (Anecd. c. 14). His artistic at peace. An expedition was dispatched in
taste is shewn by the many beautiful buildings 533, under Belisarius, which landed in Africa

which he erected, two among which those of without opposition and reduced the whole
St. Sophia at Constantinople and St. Vitalis Vandal kingdom to submission in little more
at Ravenna (though it does not appear that he than three months. The Vandals who sur-

had any share in designing this latter) have vived seem to have been rapidly absorbed into
had the unique distinction of becoming archi- the African population anyhow, we hear no
;

tectural models for subsequent ages, the one more of them. The fleet of Belisarius received
JUSTlNlAIfUS 1. JUSTINIANUS I. GOO
in rapid succession the submission of Sardinia, generals were quite unable to resist in the open
Corsica, and the Balearic Isles. Orthodoxy field. In 540 Antioch, far the greatest town
was re-established there and in Africa. of the eastern part of the empire, was sacked,
Justinian directed the laws against heretics and many thousand inhabitants carried to a
to be put in force against the Arians and new city, built for them near Ctesiphon, his
Donatists in Africa, and their meetings to be own capital. Towards the end of Justinian's
altogether forbidden (Baron, ad ann. 535). reign the fighting slackened ; a peace for 50
The orthodo.x bishops met in a council, at years was concluded in 562 on terms humili-
which 207 prelates were present (Baron, ad ating to Justinian, who undertook to pay
ann. 535). The orthodox churches of Africa yearly 30,000 gold pieces. This peace lasted
were restored to the full enjoyment of their only 10 years but the war which began in
;

rights, property, and privileges. But the 572 lies outside Justinian's reign.
African church and province never regained Less famous, but perhaps even more ruinous,
its former prosperity. The misgovernment of were the contests which Justinian had to
the imperial lieutenants completed the ruin maintain against the barbarians of Scythia
which the Vandals had begun, and the wild and the Danube. From the Alps to the Black
Moorish tribes encroached in all directions on Sea, the N. border of the empire was the scene
the Roman population. Great part of the of seldom intermitted warfare. The various
country, once the most productive part of tribes whom the Roman historian calls Huns,
the Roman dominions, relapsed into solitude and who included the race subsequently dis-
and neglect ; the Christians there were still tinguished as Bulgarians, poured from the .S.
divided by the mutual jealousies of Donatists, of what is now Russia down upon Thrace,
Arians, and orthodo.x. ravaged it and Macedonia, penetrated on one
The success of his enterprise against the occasion to the isthmus of Corinth, and six
Vandals encouraged Justinian to attempt the years before Justinian's death, in 559, ap-
recovery of Italy from the Ostrogoths, who peared in great force under the walls of Con-
had held it and Sicily since the invasion under stantinople, from which they were repulsed
Theodoric in 493-494. The emperors at by the skill and vigour of Belisarius. In the
Constantinople considered themselves, ever N.W. provinces villages were destroyed,
since the extinction of the Western branch of cultivated land laid waste, and immense
the empire in 476, de jure sovereigns of Italy numbers of the inhabitants carried into
and the whole West, regarding the Gothic slavery. The only serious efforts the emperor
kings partly as their lieutenants, partly as made against these enemies (besides the
mere usurpers. Justinian dispatched Beli- building of fortresses) were by diplomac}'.
sarius from Constantinople with a fleet and His policy was to foment hostilities between
over 7,000 men in the autumn of 535. He neighbouring tribes, taking sometimes one,
reduced Sicily easily in a few weeks. Then sometimes another, into alliance with the
he attacked Italy, occupying Rome in Dec. empire, and offering large presents, often so
536. The Ostrogoths had shortly before regular as to amount to a kind of blackmail,
risen against their king Theodahad, and to buy them off for the moment or induce
chosen Witigis, whom Belisarius took at them to turn their arms against some other
Ravenna and carried to Constantinople, barbarian power. His activity as a negotiator
leaving the imperial power supreme in Italy. was unwearied. Embassies from all parts of
Totila, whom the Goths chose in the room of the barbarian world arrived at Constanti-
Witigis, recovered fortress after fortress from nople, excited the wonder of the people by
the incompetent generals who succeeded their strange garb and manners, and returned
Belisarius, till he was master of most part of home laden with gifts and promises. Even
Italy; and at length restored the Gothic the tribes of the Baltic and the Turks of Cen-
kingdom to a better position than it had held tral Asia seem to have thus come into relations
since the death of Theodoric. But in 552 his with him. His policy was much blamed in
army was defeated, and himself slain by his own time (see esp. Procop. Anecd.), and
Narses, and with him died the last hopes of may appear shortsighted as supplying fresh
the Gothic kingdom of Italy. After Narses inducements to the barbarians to renew their
had destroyed Butelin and his host in a great attacks and letting them know the wealth of
battle near Casilinum in Campania, 544, the the capital ; but perhaps no other policy was
small remains of the Gothic nation either possible, and the incidental advantages of
passed into Spain and Gaul to mingle with Roman influence and culture upon the border
other barbarians or were lost among the tribes may have been considerable.
Roman population of Italy, which now was III.We possess no systematic account of
finally in Justinian's hands. It was, however, the internal state of the empire in Justinian's
a desolated and depopulated Ijaly. Nor was time, and depend only upon occasional
it long left to his successors. notices by historians like Procopius and
The third great struggle of Justinian's reign Agathias, and a study of Justinian's legislative
was against the Persian empire, then under measures. The civil service was, and had
Kobad and Chosroes .\nushirvan in the zenith long been, in a high state of efiiciency. Such
of its power. After several campaigns Chos- alterations as Justinian made tended to perfect
roes concluded in 533, on obtaining from the this organization and to render all its members
emperor 11,000 pounds of gold, a peace which more completely subservient to the crown.
gave rest to the eastern provinces. In 539 He spent enormous sums not only on his wars
war broke out again, and also a revolt against but in the erection of churches, fortresses, and
Justinian in Armenia, a part of whose people public buildings of every kind (a list will be
appealed to the Persians for help. Chosroes found in the de Aedificiis of Procopius), and
commanded a vast force, which the Roman was therefore always in want of money. Op-
39
610 JUSTINIANUS I. JUSTINIANUS I.

pressive as taxation had been before, he seems IV. Ecclesiastical policy occupied no small
to have made it even more stringent ;
and share of Justinian's thoughts and care.
when the land-tax and other ordinary sources During the Hfetime of Justin I., he sought
of revenue failed, he was driven to such ex- to re-establish the communion of the churches
pedients as the sale of public offices, and even of Constantinople and Rome, which had been
to the prostitution of justice and the confisca- interrupted owing to the Monophysite contro-
tion of the property of private persons. versies. On his accession in 527 he professed
Though the instances of this rest chiefly on himself a zealous supporter of the Two Natures
the untrustworthy authority of the Anecdota and the decrees of Chalcedon, and the firmness
of Procopius (who ascribes the worst to the of his throne was no doubt partly due to this
immediate action of the empress), stories in coincidence of his theological views with those
other historians give some support to the of the bulk of his subjects in Constantinople,
accusation. On one occasion he attempted Thrace, and Asia Minor. He had great con-
to debase the coin, but was checked by a fidence in his own powers as a theologian,
threatened insurrection in the capital. The and took an active part in all the current con-
same charges of venality and extortion are troversies. A diligent student and having
brought against Tribonian, John of Cappa- some literary pretensions, he read and wrote
docia, and others of Justinian's ministers. much on theological topics. His ecclesiastical
The administration of justice must have been policy apparently had two main objects, not,
greatly improved by the promulgation of the however, consistently pursued the mainten- —
whole binding law in the Codex, Pandects, and ance of the orthodox doctrine of the Four Coun-
Institutes; and great importance was evident- cils, and especially of Chalcedon, and the rer^
ly attached to the maintenance of the law conciliation of the Monophysites, or at least
schools of Berytus and Constantinople ;
cor- the inducing by apparent concessions the more
ruption may, however, have largely prevailed moderate Monophysites to accept the decrees
among the judges. Brilliant as Justinian's of Chalcedon. There was in his court an
reign may appear to us, the sufferings endured active, though probably concealed, Monophy-
by the people from war, taxation, the per- site party, headed by, and sheltering itself
secution of heretics, the blows struck at the under, the empress Theodora. One of the
privileges of various classes and professions, emperor's first acts was to summon a confer-
as well as from the great plague and from ence of leading theologians on both sides, so
destructive earthquakes, made his rule un- as to bring about a reconciliation. After
popular, as shewn by the rebellions in Africa several sittings, however, in one of which
and the disaffection of the reconquered Justinian delivered a long allocution, vital
Italians. In Constantinople, not to speak of points were reached on which neither side
minor seditions, there occurred a tremendous could yield, and the conference was dissolved.
insurrection in Jan. 532, arising out of a Among the Monophysite leaders were Severus,
tumult in the hippodrome, and apparently deposed from the patriarchate of Antioch in
due, partly to resentment at the maladminis- the time of Justin, and Anthimus, bp. of
tration of John of Cappadocia, partly to the Trebizond. They seem to have acquired
presence in the city of a large number of much influence in Theodora's coterie, and,
starving immigrants. The revolters held the probably owing to her, Anthimus was raised
city for some days, set fire to some of in 535 to the patriarchate of Constantinople,
the finest buildings, drove Justinian into his in spite of the doctrinal suspicions attaching
palace fortress, and proclaimed Hypatius, to him. Pope Agapetus, having heard of
nephew of the deceased emperor Anastasius, these suspicions, and disapproving, as Rome
emperor. Having no concerted plan of action, was wont to do, of translations from one
part of them were induced to abandon the bishopric to another, refused to communicate
rest, who were then surprised and slaughtered with the patriarch till he should have purged
by the imperial guards under the command of himself from the charge of heresy, and insisted
Belisarius. It is said that 30,000 people that, when purged, Anthimus should return
perished in this rising, which is known as the to Trebizond. Justinian (perhaps owing to
Nika sedition, from the watchword used by the support which Theodora seems to have
the rebels. (See an interesting account by given Anthimus) was at first displeased and
W. A. Schmidt, Der Aufstand in Constantinopel resisted, but Agapetus prevailed. Anthimus
unter Kaiser Justinian.) was deposed, and Mennas, head of the hospi-
He made efforts to open up new channels tium of Samson in Constantinople, appointed
for the traffic in silk, and ultimately suc- in his place and consecrated by Agapetus,
ceeded, through the boldness of two Persian who soon afterwards died. By the directions
monks, who conveyed the eggs of the worm of Justinian, Mennas called a local synod,
in a hollow cane from China to the empire. which met during May and June 536 (Mansi,
The manufacture of silk was thus no longer viii. ; cf. Hefele, Conciliengeschichte, ii. pp. 742-
at the mercy of the Persians, who had stopped 753), and deposed Anthimus from his see of
the supply in time of war, and the culture of Trebizond. The synod anathematized Sever-
the silk-worm became an important branch us, Peter of Apamea, and Zoaras as suspected
of industry in the Roman East. of Monophysitism. In Aug. 536 Justinian
As a whole, the faults of Justinian's domes- issued an edict addressed to Mennas confirm-
tic government appear greatly to outweigh its ing all that the synod had done.
merits. His subjects had grown tired of him After this there appears to have been a
long before his death ;but later ages looked comparative calm in the ecclesiastical world
back to his reign as a period of conquest of Constantinople, till the emperor's attention
abroad and magnificence at home, and accept- was called to the growth of Origenistic
ed the surname of the Great. opinions in the East, and especially in Syria.
JUSTINIANUS I. JUSTINIANUS I. 611

About the beginning of the 6th cent, there with some show of plausibility alleged that
had been in the monasteries of Palestine, and the authority of that council was not estab-
particularly in that great one called the New lished while these assailants seemed to be
Laura, a considerable diffusion of Origen's protected by the aegis of Chalcedon.
opinions, which excited the alarm of St. Sabas Seconded by Theodora (says Liberatus,
and of the patriarch Peter of Jerusalem. The M.S.), Theodore Ascidas and Domitian per-
latter in 543 induced Pelagius, apocrisiarius suaded Justinian to compose and issue a
of the Roman
bishop, to make representations treatise or edict against the Three Articles.
to the emperor on the subject, and sent with Desisting from his book against the Acephali,
him four monks to accuse the followers of he forthwith composed the suggested edict,
Origen. The four monks were supported by which was issued between 543 and 545, prob-
Mennas the patriarch. Two Origenist bishops, ably in 545. It has perished, only three or
Theodore Ascidas, archbp. of Caesarea in Cap- four short extracts being preserved by Fa-
padocia, and Domitian, bp. of Ancyra, resided cundus. It was circulated through the church
usually at Constantinople and had much in- for the signatures of the bishops. The four
fluence with the emperor. Nevertheless they Eastern patriarchs were naturally afraid of
seem to have] feared the charge of heresy reopening any question as to the authority
too much to resist the monks from Palestine, of Chalcedon. Mennas, after some hesitation,
and perhaps did not own their attachment signed, but subject to a promise given him on
to Origen's writings. Anyhow, the emperor oath, that he might withdraw his signature if
promptly condemned the accused opinions, the bp. of Rome refused to agree. The other
issuing a long edict addressed to the patriarch three, Ephraim of Antioch, Peter of Jerusa-
Mennas, in which he classes Origen among the lem, Zoilus of Alexandria, under real or
heretics, and singles out for anathema ten imagined threats of deposition, obeyed and
particular doctrines contained in his writings. signed, and after more or less intimidation and
A local council, convoked by Mennas, dutifully the offer of various rewards, the great ma-
echoed the emperor's edict, publishing its jority of bishops through Syria, Asia Minor,
anathemas against 14 propositions drawn Greece, and Macedonia signed also. In the
from Origen, and condemning his person. West, the bishops having less to lose and being
Theodore and Domitian had submitted, but accustomed to face Arian potentates, Jus-
their mortification drove them to take action tinian found a less ready compliance. The
in another way, and thus to awaken a long, bishops of Africa led the opposition, and were
needless, and most mischievous controversy. largely supported by those of Italy, Gaul,
Justinian was at work upon a treatise on the Illyricum, and Dalmatia. In Rome much
Incarnation, whereby he trusted to convince alarm was produced by the arrival of the edict,
and conciliate the stubborn Acephali (or ex- and by the emperor's command to Vigilius,
tremer Monophysites) of Egypt. Theodore, lately chosen pope, to repair to Constantinople.
according to our authorities, suggested to him Theodora enforced by terrible threats his
that a simpler way of winning back those who appearance. Vigilius, not venturing openly
disliked the council of Chalcedon would be to to oppose the emperor, and fearing the anger
get certain writings condemned which that of Theodora, had also to reckon with the all
council had approved, but which the Mono- but universal loyalty to the council of Chalce-
physites disliked as being of a distinctly Nes- don of the Roman church and of the Western
torian tendency. (See Liberatus ap. Galland. churches generally, and so temporized. He
Bibl. Pair. xii. 160, as to Theodore, and Facun- arrived in Constantinople in 547, having
dus, bk. i. c. 2, as to Domitian of Ancyra ;cf. delayed nearly a year in Sicily. In 548 he
Evagr. H. E. iv. 38 ; Vita S. Sabae.) They issued a document called the Judicatum, con-
singled out 3 treatises for condemnation, demning the Three Articles, saving, however,
which soon became famous as the rpla the authority of Chalcedon. In 548 Theo-
K€(pd\aia (tria capitula), which we usually dora died, but Justinian was now thoroughly
translate Three Chapters, but would be better committed against the Three Articles. He
called the Three Articles, viz. the writings of continued to coerce the recalcitrant bishops
Theodore of Mopsuestia, the treatise of Theo- of Africa, depriving some of their sees, and,
doret against Cyril and his twelve articles, and after various negotiations with Vigilius, issued
the letter of (or attributed to) Ibas, bp. of in 551 a second edict against the Three Articles
Edessa, to the Persian bp. Maris. Later, the addressed to the whole Christian world, which
term rpLa Ke(pd\aia came to mean both the has been preserved under the name of the Con-
persons and writings impugned. This latter fession of Faith, d/jioXoyia wiffTeui ']ov<rTti>iavoO
is the usual sense in the authors of the time avTOKparopos (Mansi, ix. 537). This edict
{e.g. Facundus of Hermiane, whose treatise is really a theological treatise, taking the
is entitled Defensio pro Tribus Capitulis) and writings of the three impugned doctors and
in the protocols of the fifth general council. discovering heresies in them by minute scru-
The Nestorians still appealed to Theodore as tiny and inference. Vigilius was required to
their highest authority, and triumphantly subscribe it, but refused, and took refuge in
pointed to the fact that he had never been the basilica of St. Peter at Constantinople,
condemned. Against Theodoret and Ibas the and afterwards in the church of St. Euphemia
case was weaker. Both had joined in ana- at Chalcedon. Here he remained, until the
thematizing Nestorius at Chalcedon, and been emperor, anxious for his concurrence in sum-
restored to their sees. But both had attacked moning a general council as the only solution
Cyril, who, though claimed by the Mono- for the dissensions, induced him to withdraw
physites, was also a bulwark of orthodoxy, his censure of the edict. He then returned
and the ep. to Maris was a violent assault on to Constantinople to await the opening of the
the council of Ephesus. It might therefore be council. The first sitting was on May 5, 553,
612 JUSTINIANUS I. JUSTINIANUS 1.

Eutychius, who, upon the death of Mennas in the authority of the council of Chalcedon,
Aug. 552, had become patriarch of Constan- which of course never meant to approve these
tinople, presided. By him sat Apollinaris of heresies. Being then released by Justinian,
Alexandria and Domninus of Antioch. Eus- Vigilantius set off for Rome, but died in Syra-
tochius of Jerusalem was represented by 3 cuse upon his way. A serious schism fol-
bishops. Altogether 151 bishops were present lowed in the West. The bishops of Dalmatia
at the opening, while 164 signed at the end, and Illyricum were hottest in their opposition
the very large majority belonging to the East. to the anathemas of the fifth council, and
Six from Africa attended, but more than 20 their archbp. Frontinus was taken to Con-
were kept away by Vigilius, who himself stantinople and thence banished to Upper
refused to attend, but sent his views in writ- Egypt. A manifesto by Justinian, addressed
ing in a document called the Constitutum to some Western bishops {ib. 589), has been
(Mansi, ix. 61), presented, not to the council, supposed to be an answer to remonstrances
but to Justinian himself, who refused to from these Illyrians. The resistance in Africa
receive it. Justinian addressed a letter to the was broken by similar violent means, a good
fathers, reproaching Vigilius, and requiring many bishops being deposed and imprisoned
his name to be struck out of the diptychs, as in convents, under the auspices of the metro-
having by his defence of Theodoret and Ibas politan Primasius of Carthage, and by the
excluded himself from the right to church- secular arm of the governor. In Gaul and
fellowship. He also produced evidence that Spain there was great discontent, though not a
the pope had solemnly promised, both to him- complete breach with Rome while in N. Italy
;

self and Theodora, to procure the condemna- the bishops of Tuscany, the province of Milan,
tion of the Three Articles. Thereupon the and Istria and Venetia, broke off communion*
council, troubling no further about the pope, with the pope. The patriarchate of Aquileia,
proceeded to examine the writings impugned. afterwards removed to Grado, and finally
(Hefele, u.s. 267-274. For the Ada see divided into the two small patriarchates of
Mansi, vol. ix. and under Constantinople, Grado and Aquileia, arose out of this schism,
D. C. A.) Theodore of Mopsuestia was ana- which did not end till the beginning of the 8th
thematized absolutely, and anathema was cent. Ultimately the whole Western church
pronounced against Theodoret's treatise in was brought by the efforts of the popes to re-
opposition to Cyril's Twelve Articles and cognize the fifth general council. The effect,
against the letter to Maris, which passed under however, which Justinian had been encouraged
the name of Ibas. A series of 14 articles, or to expect was not attained. Not a single
anathemas, was prepared, most of them corre- Monophysite seems to have returned to the
sponding closely with the articles of J ustinian's orthodox church. The Egyptian Acephali in
o/jioXoyia Trio-rews, in which the orthodox faith particular were as stubborn as ever.
as to the Trinity and Incarnation was restated. Justinian in his last days himself lapsed
The first four general councils and their into heresy. The doctrine that the body of
decrees were formally accepted, and art. 11 Christ was insensible to fleshly passions and
anathematizes Arius, Eunomius, Macedonius, weaknesses, was in fact incorruptible, and so
Apollinarius, Origen, Nestorius, Eutyches, not ordinary flesh at all, had been broached
and their adherents. It has been often sup- early in the century by bp. Julian of Hali-
posed that the opinions of Origen and his carnassus, a leading Monophysite, in opposi-
followers were formally condemned at this tion to the view of Severus, patriarch of
council. (See Evagr. iv. 38; Theoph. Antioch, that Christ's body was corruptible
Chronogr. p. 354 of Bonn ed. vol. i.) But this up to the resurrection, and only afterwards
has arisen from confounding the former local ceased to be so. Justinian published an edict
council under Mennas in 543 with this general declaring the doctrine of Julian orthodox and
council. Origen is only referred to in its requiring the assent of all patriarchs and
general anathema, and thus no particular bishops to this new article. Eutychius of
doctrines of his have ever been condemned by Constantinople was deposed for rejecting the
the whole church. The 14 articles were sub- edict. Before more could be done, Justinian
scribed at the last sitting, on June 2, 553, by died (a.d. 565) and the controversy at once
all the 164 bishops, headed by Eutychius of collapsed, for his successor took comparatively
Constantinople. Eight African bishops signed. slight interest in theological questions.
Justinian sent the decrees all over the empire The general character of Justinian's eccle-
for signature by the bishops. Little opposition siastical policy has been sufficiently indicated.
was experienced in the East. The monks of In spite of his protestations of respect for the
the New Laura, who attacked the decrees, clergy, the important place they held at his
were chased out by the imperial general Anas- court, and the privileges which his legislation
tasius. The council had threatened with de- gave them, he never hesitated to resort to
position any bishops or other clerics who despotism and banishment to bend them to
should teach or speak against it. We hear, his will. No previous Roman emperor had
however, of only one bishop, Alexander of been so much interested in theological dis-
Abydus, who was deposed. Vigilius and the putes, nor arrogated to himself so great a
Western ecclesiastics who had signed the right of interference even with the popes.
Constitutum appear to have held out for some His control of the fifth council was much more
time, but in Dec. 553 Vigilius issued a letter direct and considerable than his predecessors
(Mansi, ix. 414), addressed to the patriarch exercised at Ephesus and Chalcedon.
Eutychius, in which he owns that he was in Justinian was through his life a resolute,
the wrong and is now glad to confess it. He though not always consistent, persecutor.
then anathematizes Theodore, Theodoret. Nestorians and Eutychians were punished
and the letter of Ibas, without prejudice to with deposition from ecclesiastical office, ex-
JUSTINIANUS I. JUSTINIANUS I. 013

communication, and occasionally with banish- Roman world of open and cultivated paganism
ment. Manicheans, Gnostics, and Montanists as well as of the Platonic philosophy.
were more severely dealt with, deprived of V. Justinian's legislation falls under two
all civil rights and forbidden to meet for principal heads— his work as a codifier and
worship. These penalties were often enforced consolidator of pre-existing law ; and his own
with much cruelty and sometimes produced new laws, some of which were incorporated in
sanguinary contests. The Montanists of the Codex Constitutionum, while others, pub-
Phrygia, being required to undergo baptism, lished subsequently, remain as detached
shut themselves up in their churches, killed statutes, and go by the name of the Novels
their wives and children, and set fire to the [Novellae Constitutiones) . The vast changes
buildings. Similar rigours were inflicted on involved in the establishment of Christianity
Jews and Samaritans, though the Jews, as had rendered much of the old law, though still
a serviceable element in the population, formally unrepealed, practically obsolete.
seem to have in practice fared somewhat There was therefore overwhelming necessity
better than the others. It is not very easy for sweeping reforms both in the substance
to determine precisely how far the laws and in the outward form and expression of the
directed against heathenism were carried out. law. Such reforms had been attempted in
They punish apostasy with death, require all the time of Theodosius II., when the Theo-
persons to undergo baptism, deprive pagans dosian Codex, containing a collection of the
of all civil rights and privileges, and forbid later constitutions, had been prepared and
any public pagan worship. In spite of this, a published a.d. 43S. This, however, dealt only
great number of pagans continued to exist with the imperial constitutions, not with the
even among the cultivated and wealthy classes writings of the jurists and now, nearly a cen-
;

of the capital. An inquisition at Constanti- tury later, the old evils were found as serious
nople in the 3rd year of Justinian's reign as ever, while the further changes in society
(Theoph. Chron. p. 153) shewed a large number had made the necessity for abolishing anti-
of pagans in the higher official classes. An quated enactments even greater.
ordinance was then issued, forbidding all civil Justinian set to work so promptly after his
employment to persons not orthodox Chris- accession that he had probably meditated
tians and three months were allowed for con- already upon the measures which were called
version. Not long before, Justinian had taken for and fixed his eyes on the men to be used as
away all the churches of the heretics, except instruments. He began with the easier part
one of the Arians, and given them to the of the task, the codification of jus novum, the
orthodox {ib. 150). Energetic inquiries through imperial constitutions of more recent date. A
W. Asia Minor are said to have led to the commission was appointed in Feb. 528 to go
enforced baptism of 70,000 persons. Among through the whole mass of constitutions and
the mountain tribes of Taygetus paganism select for preservation those still in force and
survived till the days of Basil I. (867-886). of practical importance. In Apr. 529 the
Only at Athens, however, did persons of Codex Constitutionum was formally promul-
intellectual and social eminence continue to gated, and copies sent into every province of
openly avow themselves heathens. The pro- the empire, with directions that it should
fessors of its university, or at least the most supersede all other constitutions previously
distinguished among them, were not Chris- in force. (See Const. Summa Reipublicae
tians. Although speculative moralists and prefixed to the Codex.)
mystics, making philosophy their rule of life, The next step was to deal with the jus vetus,
rather than worshippers of the old deities of the law contained in the writings of the
Olympus, their influence was decidedly anti- authorized jurists, which practically included
Christian. In 528, on the discovery of crypto- so much of the old leges, senatus consulta, and
paganism in his capital, Justinian issued edicta as retained any practical importance.
several stringent constitutions, one of which, But there were many differences of opinion
forbidding " persons persisting in the madness among the jurists whose writings had legal
of Hellenism to teach any branch of know- authority. Justinian accordingly issued a
ledge," struck directly at the Athenian pro- series of 50 constitutions, known as the
fessors. In 529 he sent a copy of the Codex Quinquaginta Decisiones, settling the dis-
Constitutionum, containing this ordinance, puted points (see Const. Cordi Nobis pre-
to Athens, with a prohibition to teach law fixed to the Codex). At the same time a
there, and shortly after the teaching of philo- large number of other ordinances were pro-
sophy was similarly forbidden, and the re- mulgated, amending the laws and abolishing
maining property of the Platonic Academy was obsolete provisions. The ground being thus
seized for public purposes. This finally extin- cleared, he appointed a commission of 16
guished the university. Its head, Damascius, a lawyers, under the presidency of Tribonian.
neo-Platonistof Syrian birth, and by conviction Their instructions were chiefly to collect
:

a resolute heathen, and six of his colleagues into one body all best worth preserving in the
proceeded (in 532) to the court of Chosroes, writings of the authorized jurists, making
king of Persia, at Ctesiphon, but soon returned extracts so as to avoid both repetition and
to the Roman empire, in which Chosroes contradiction, and give one statement of the
secured for them, by a treaty he negotiated law upon each of the many points where dis-
with Justinian, the freedom to live unbaptized crepant views had formerly prevailed. Re-
and unmolested. They did not, however, dundancies were to be cut off, errors in manu-
settle again in Athens, which rapidly became scripts or in expression set right, alterations
a Christian city even in externals, its temples introduced where necessary, no antinomia
being turned into churches. So one may (contradiction) allowed to remain, nothing
ascribe to Justinian the extinction in the repealed which had been already enacted in
614 JUSTINIANUS I. JUSTINIANUS I.

the Codex. Obsolete rules of law were to be became under Justinian the sole law of the
passed over. The work was to be distributed Roman empire, was accepted in the early
into 50 books. The constitution containing Middle Ages as the law of Germany, S. France,
these directions is dated Dec. 530. The com- and Italy, and has exerted a great influence
missioners promptly set to work, reading no on the jurisprudence even of countries which,
less than 2,000 treatises for the purpose of like England, repudiate (except in special
making extracts. The work, to which the departments) its authority. As we now
names of Digesta or Pandectae (WavSiKrai. — understand by codification the reduction of
all receivers) are indifferently given by Justin- the whole law into one scientific system of
ian, was completed in the autumn of rules, new in form and expression though
533 and
published with two prefatorv constitutions on mostly old in substance, the work of Justinian
Dec. 16. Each book is divided into titles, would be better described as a Consolidation
each title into extracts. The total number than a Codification. On the whole, it may be
of titlesis 432, and of extracts from said that he exercised a wise discretion in
39 jurists
9,123. The whole book is published as an attempting no more, and many as are the
imperial constitution, deriving its force from faults in the arrangement of his Codex and
the imperial sanction, which abrogated all Digest and in the occasional disproportion of
pre-existing law, except that contained in the treatment, the work was done decidedly better
Codex and subsequently published constitu- than other literary and scientific productions
tions. No judge nor advocate might travel of Justinian's age would have led us to expect.
out of the four corners of these two new The Corpus Juris held its ground as the
statutes, the Codex and the Digesta. supreme law book of the empire for little more
While the Digest was in progress, Justinian than three centuries. Much of the earlier
directed three of the chief commissioners— law had then become obsolete, and something
Tribonian, Theophilus professor of law in the shorter, less elaborate, more adapted to the
university of Constantinople, and Dorotheus needs and lower capacities of the time was re-
professor of law at Berytus (Beyrut in Syria, quired. Accordingly the emperors, Basil the
the other great law-school of the empire) to
prepare an elementary manual for educational
— Macedonian, Constantine, and Leo the philo-
sopher, directed the preparation of a new law
purposes, based on the existing treatises, and book, which, revised and finally issued under
especially on the deservedly popular Institutes Leo c. 890, received the name of the Basilica,
of Gains, but brought up to the state of the or Imperial Code. It contains, in 60 books,
1 aw as changed by recent emperors and by a complete system of law for the Eastern
Justinian himself. This treatise, dealing in empire, retaining a great deal of the substance
four books with the law of Persons, of Things, of the Corpus Juris, but in a wholly altered
and of Actions, was published shortly before form ; the extracts from the Codex of con-
the Digest, not only as a text-book for teach- stitutions, and those from the Pandects and
ing, but also as a law, a constitution with full Novels being all thrown into one new Codex,
imperial authority. It is the treatise now and intermingled with later matter. It is in
known as Justinian's Institutiones. Greek is much less bulky than the Corpus
;

On Nov. 16, 534, a revised Codex, including Juris, and has come down to us imperfect.
constitutions published since 529, and omitting The best ed. is Haimbach's (I.eipz. 1833-
laws that had been in the interval repealed or 1851), with supplement by Zacharia (Leipz.
become unnecessary, was issued with an in- 1846). The Codex is cited in Herzog. vol. ix.
troductory constitution (now prefixed to it) (1901), according to the ed. of P. Kriiger
called Cordi nobis, abrogating the former (Berlin, 1877) ; the Novellae according to the
edition altogether. The Codex we now have ed. of C. E. Zacharias a Lingenthal (2 vols.
is this new one. It is divided into 12 books Leipz. 1881).
and 765 titles, containing 4,652 constitutions, The new legislation of Justinian is contained
the earliest dating from Hadrian, while far partly in the Codex and partly in the Novels.
the larger part of the constitutions in the The legal changes made by the constitutions
Codex were more recent, and perhaps half of of the first seven years of his reign, which
them the work of the Christian emperors. have been incorporated in the Codex, are often
Between 534 and the end of Justinian's merely solutions of problems, or settlements
reign a large number of new laws appeared, of disputes which had perplexed or divided
the majority during the lifetime of Tribonian the earlier jurists. These were promulgated
(d. 545). These are called Novellae Constitu- in the Quinquaginta Decisiones already men-
tiones post Codicem (peapai diard^cis), or tioned. A considerable number more relate
shortly Novellae (veapai). Novels. They to administrative subjects ; while the rest are
mostly have the form of edicts or general laws miscellaneous, running over the whole field of
rather than of the earlier rescripta. They do law. For his ecclesiastical constitutions see
not appear to have ever been gathered into articles in D. C. A., to which this subject more
one officially sanctioned volume (although properly belongs. A few remarks may, how-
this had originally been promised, see Const. ever, be profitably made here on the emperor's
Cordi nobis), but several private collections ecclesiastical laws as contained firstly in the
were made, from which our present text is Codex Constitutionum where they are abbre-
,

derived. (See as to the Novels Biener, Gesch. viated and, secondly, in the Novels, where
;

der Novellen Justinians, and generallv as to the they appear at full and often wearisome
history and edd. of the Corpus Juris', Rudorff, length. The earlier ones are in the Codex,
Romische Rechtsgeschichte, Leipz. 1837.) the Novels extend from 534 to 565.
The Corpus Juris Civilis, consisting of the In Justinian's Codex the first 13 titles of
four parts already mentioned —the Codex, the
— bk. i. are occupied by laws relating to Christian
Digesta, the Institutiones, and the Novellae theology and doctrine. Title I., styled " De
JUSTINIANUS I. JUSTINIANUS I. 615
Summa Trinitate et Fide Catholica et ut nemo interesting collection of various enactments
de ea publice contendere audeat," contains against paganism from the famous edict of
(besides extracts from laws of earlier emperors) Constantius (a.d. 353) onwards, concluding
four laws by Justinian, beginning with the with a general command to all heathens to be
fifth, some of which have been taken into baptized forthwith, on pain of losing all their
the Codex from the Collectio Constitutionum property and all civic rights while death is
;

Ecclesiastic arum, laying down the true ortho- the penalty for any one who, having been
dox faith as defined by the first four general baptized, relapses into heathenism. All
councils, and anathematizing " Nestorius the sacrifices, or other acts of pagan worship, are
man-worshipper, Eutyches the insane, Apol- strictly forbidden and severely punishable ;
linaris the soul destroyer," and all who agree all gifts of property to any heathen temple or
with these heretics. One of these constitu- purpose are confiscated, the temples being
tions is an edict addressed by Justinian to all destroyed or appropriated to other uses,
pope John (as well as to Epiphanius, patriarch and the teaching of paganism, and indeed any
of Constantinople), with the reply of the pope teaching by anv pagan, is absolutely pro-
confirming the edict as a declaration of the hibited. Titles XII. and XIII., " De his qui
faith. Title II., " De Sacrosanctis Ecclesiis ad ecclesias confugiunt vel ibi exclamant,"
et de rebus et privilegiis earum," contains and " De his qui in ecclesiis manumittuntur,"
eight laws by Justinian dealing chiefly with are less important. They illustrate the growth
legacies to churches or other charitable uses, of the right of sanctuary in churches, and the
and with the management of church property. practice of manumission there. With title
Title III. is, " De Episcopis et clericis et XIV., " De Legibus et Constitutionibus Prin-
orphanotrophiis et xenodochiis et brepho- cipum et edictis," ordinary civil legislation
trophiis et ptochotrophiis et asceteriis et begins. Agood many references to eccle-
monachis et privilegiis eorum et castrensi siastical matters,and especially to the juris-
peculio et de redimendis captivis et de nuptiis diction of the bishops, are scattered through
clericorum vetitis seu permissis." Sixteen other parts of the Codex. It is clear from
laws in it (less than one-third in number, but this summary that neither Justinian nor his
more than half in bulk) are by Justinian, and predecessors intended to frame a complete
treat of a great many topics, including the body of laws or rules for the government of
election and qualifications of bishops and the church, its hierarchical constitution and
priests, the choice of heads (fjyovfievoi, at) of administration, much less for its internal
monasteries and nunneries, the observance of discipline or its ritual. These things had
a pure and strict life in monasteries, the man- been left to be settled by custom, by the
agement of church property by the bishop and authority of patriarchs, metropolitans, and
steward, with various provisions relating to bishops, by the canons of councils as occasion
charitable foundations, to the residence of the arose. Not that the civil monarch supposed
clergy at their churches, the regular mainten- such to lie beyond his scope, for in Constan-
ance of divine service there, and to wills of tinople the emperors, and Justinian most of
property for church purposes. Title IV., all, regarded themselves as clothed with a
" De Episcopali Audientia et de divcrsis supreme executive authority over the religious
capitulis quae ad jus curamque et reverentiam no less than the secular society. The dis-
pontificalem pertinent," is almost equally tinction afterwards asserted in the West
miscellaneous in its contents. Fourteen con- between the temporal and spiritual powers
stitutions in it are by Justinian. The fifth, had not then been imagined. No Eastern
" De Haereticis et Manichaeis et Samaritis," ecclesiastic denied the emperor's right to
contains a selection of persecuting or disabling summon general councils, direct them, and
laws from the time of Constantine down to and confirm their decrees. But the emperors had
including Justinian's own. The penalties been content to leave to churchmen the settling
threatened, and the general severity of tone, of what were regarded as more or less technical
steadily increase as time goes on, and the and professional matters, which they were
number of different kinds of heretics included fittest to settle. The narrow and bigoted
in the denunciations is enlarged. In one spirit, which runs through the persecuting
case (c. 2i) a distinction is drawn by the laws included in the Codex, is fully as con-
emperor between various degrees of heresy spicuous in Justinian's own as in those of any
and infidelity. " Manichaeis Borboritis et of his predecessors. Moreover, by re-enacting
paganis, necnon Samaritis et Montanistis et them he made himself responsible for all that
Ascodrogitis et Ophitis omne testimonium they contained. In that age of the world it
sicut et alias legitimas conversationes sanci- was believed possible to stamp out heresy by
mus esse interdictum. Aliis vero haereticis a sufficiently vigorous exercise of the arm of
tantum modo judicialia testimonia contra flesh. Paganism was in fact thus stamped
orthodoxos, secundum quod constitutum est, out, though in one or two mountainous dis-
volumus esse inhibita." Title VI., " Ne tricts of Greece and perhaps of Asia Minor it
sanctum baptisma iteretur " VII., " De lingered secretly for 2 or 3 centuries more.
;

Apostatis " ; VIII., " Nemini licere signum The topics of the Novels, or constitutions
Salvatoris, Christi humi vel in silice vel in issued by Justinian from 535 till his death in
marmore aut insculpere aut pingere " IX., 565, are very various.
;
Of the 153 to which
" De Judaeis et coelicolis " and X., " Ne the 168 appearing in the largest collection may
;

Christianum mancipium haereticus vel pagan- be reduced, 33, forming the largest group,
us vel Judaeus habeat vel possideat vel cir- relate to ecclesiastical and religious matters.
cumcidat," are comparatively short and Next in number come those dealing \yith
contain only laws of earlier emperors. In XL, civil and military administration. Marriage
" De Paganis Sacrificiis et Templis," is an and the legal relations arising therefrom are
616 JUSTINIANUS I. JUSTINIANUS I.

dealt with in various Novels. Justinian was might otherwise have appeared to imply (Nov.
fond of tinkering at this subject, and not 45) ;a third deprives heretic women of the
always successfully. The most remarkable privileges granted by Justinian's laws to
provisions are in Novels 117 (§§ 10 and 12) women in respect of their dowry and the ;

and 134 (§ 11), in which he greatly limits the fourth is a sentence of deposition and anathe-
freedom of divorce previously allowed, almost ma against Anthimus patriarch of Constan-
indeed abolishing it. But this severity was tinople, Severus patriarch of Antioch, Peter
found unmaintainable such complaints arose
: of Apamea, Zoaras, and others charged with
that in 566, ten years after the 134th Novel Monophysitism, issued in confirmation of the
appeared, Justin tl., nephew and successor of sentence passed by the synod at Constanti-
Justinian, repealed (Nov. cxl.) the penalties nople under the patriarch Mennas in 536.
provided by it and by the 117th, leaving the The most generally remarkable characteristics
law as it had stood under earlier sovereigns. of these ecclesiastical statutes, apart from their
The Novels have a great many provisions spirit of bitter intolerance, are the strong dis-
regarding dowries, simplifying a rather com- position to favour the church, the clerical
plicated branch of the law and securing the order, and the monastic life and the assump-
;

interests of the wife. Several constitutions, tion throughout of a complete right of control
prompted by a desire for moral reforma- by the imperial legislator over all sorts of
tion, deal with criminal law, several relate to ecclesiastical affairs and questions. Although
guardianship, the position of freedmen, and there are some matters, such as ritual, penance,
other parts of the law of persons, and nine etc., touched not at all or very slightly, still
deal with the law of obligations none of them
; the impression conveyed here, as in the Codexy _

of any great importance. Among the eccle- isthat the civil power claimed a universal and
siastical Novels, several groups ma^' be dis- paramount right of legislating for the church ;

tinguished. One group contains those which nor is there any distinction laid down or
deal with the temporal rights and relations recognized between matters reserved for the
of the church and her ministers as holders of legislative action of the church in her synods
property. Eight constitutions may be re- and those which the emperor may deal with.
ferred to it, most of which are occupied with He alwaj's speaks with the utmost respect of
the length of time needed for a good title to the sacred canons, sometimes quotes them,
lands originally belonging to the church to professes to confirm them, and (Nov. 131, § i)
be acquired by adverse enjoyment and with ; expressly declares that all the canons of the
the conditions under which ecclesiastical four great general councils are to have the
lands might be alienated for a term or in force and rank of laws {tol^iv v6/jlwv iwixfiv).
perpetuity. Both topics gave Justinian much But there is no admission of the exclusive
trouble and he was sometimes obliged to right of the church or of any ecclesiastical
modify his enactments. A second group com- dignitary or body to legislate on any particular
prises constitutions merely local in application, topics this is indeed implicitly excluded by
;

referring to a particular province {e.g. Nov. 37 the laws, especially those in bk. i. of the
to Africa), church {e.g. Nov. 3 to the Great Codex, which deal with the most specially
Church of Constantinople, Nov. 40 to the spiritual of spiritual questions, the cardinal
Church of the Resurrection at Jerusalem), or doctrines of the Christian faith. It is therefore
see {e.g. Nov. 11 to the privileges of the not surprising that the African bishops who
archiepiscopal chair of Justiniana Prima in wrote against him in the matter of the Three
Illyricum). To a third and more important Articles complain of his conduct as arrogating
group may be referred the 13 constitutions to the magistrate what belonged of right to the
dealing with ecclesiastical organization and duly constituted officers of the church. Sub-
discipline, the mode of choosing bishops and sequent history shows that the Eastern em-
other clerics, their qualifications, the juris- peror always maintained his authority over the
diction of bishops, the restrictions on the church while different political conditions
;

jurisdiction of civil courts in causes where enabled the Western patriarch and the
clerics are concerned (a matter of great interest Western church generally to throw off the
in view of the questions which were to occupy control of the civil power and even extend its
medieval Europe), the rights, immunities, own jurisdiction over civil causes.
and position generally of the clergy {e.g. the These ecclesiastical Novels throw much
exemption of a bishop from patria potestas, light on the state of the 6th-cent. Eastern
Nov. 81, the devolution of the property of a church, and the evils which it was thought
cleric dying intestate without legal heirs^ Nov. necessary to remedy. We hear once or twice
131, § 13), the regulations under which a of the ignorance of the clergy, persons being
church or oratory might be built, endowed, sometimes ordained who could not read the
and consecrated, the internal discipline of prayers used in the sacramental services of the
monasteries and regulation of monastic life. Supper and Baptism (Novs. 6, 137)- Irregu-
A fourth and last group includes four ordin- larities in monastic life were frequent, as
ances levelled at heretics (a good many pro- appears from the penalties threatened (Novs.
visions affecting whom incidentally occur in 5, 133). Bishops too often resided away from
other Novels, especially in those of the third their sees, so that a prohibition to the admin-
group). One of these four, called Edictum de istrator to send money to them while absent
Fide, is a short appeal to heretics to return was needed (Nov. 6, § 3 Nov. 123, § 9)-
;

to the safe teaching and anathematizings of That a bishop must be unmarried, and a priest
the Catholic church (Nov. 132) ;another is either unmarried or married only once and
directed against Jews and Samaritans, refusing to a virgin, was insisted on. The habit of
them immunities from public burdens such as building churches without funds sufficient for
their exclusion from public offices and honours their due maintenance and service is checked
JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 617

(Novs. 57, 67), as also that of having private from the sea and there, just as I was nearing
;

chapels, or celebrating the sacred mysteries the place where I looked to be alone with my
in houses (Novs. 58, 131). The often neg- thoughts, an old man, of a pleasant counten-
lected canonical direction to hold provincial ance, and with a gentle and dignified mien,
synods twice, or at least once, a year is re- came following me a little behind." The old
newed (Nov. 138). The substance of the man asked Justin, "'For what are you come
enactments contained in these Novels and in 'I delight,' I answered, 'in these
'
here ?

the Codex, upon such matters as the election strolls, in which I can hold converse with
of bishops, celibacy of clergy, permanency of myself, without interruption a place like
;

monastic vows, etc., will be found under the this is most favourable for such talking as I
appropriate heads in D. C. A. The regula- love.' Ah you are a lover of talk, and
'
!

tions regarding a monastic life have a special not of action or of reality,' he said. You '

interest as very shortly anterior to the creation are one, I suppose, who cares more for reasons
of the rule of St. Benedict of Nursia, who than for facts, for words than for deeds.'
was a contemporary of Justinian. [J-b.] 'And how, indeed,' I answered, 'can a man
Justinus (2) Martyr, St., son of Priscus, act more efficiently than in exhibiting the
grandson of Bacchius ; born at Flavia Nea- reason that governs all, or than in laying hold
polis, hard by the ruins of ancient Sychem of it, and there, borne aloft on it, looking
(now Nablous), in Palestine {Apol. i. i). He down on others who stray helplessly below,
calls himself a Samaritan {Dial. c. 120, § 349 and do nothing sane, or dear to God ? With-
c), so that his family had probably settled out philosophy and right reason there is no
there definitely ; but he is obviously not a possible wisdom. Every man, therefore,
Samaritan by blood or religion ; nothing in ought to esteem philosophy as his noblest
his writing would point to such an origin. work, and to let all else come second or third
He has not heard, even, of Moses or of the to it for by philosophy things are made right
;

prophets until well on in life ;he classes him- and acceptable, without it they become
self among those Gentiles to whom the Gospel common and vulgar.' Philosophy, then,
'

was opened so largely when the main mass is the true cause of happiness, is it ? he asked '

{Apol. i. 53, § 88 b) of the house of Jacob, in in reply. 'Yes, indeed, it is,' I said, 'it
which he includes by name the Samaritans as and it alone.' "
well as the Jews, rejected it. He speaks of A discussion follows on the possibility of
being brought up in heathen customs, being philosophy giving the true knowledge of God,
uncircumcised {Dial. c. 29, § 246 c), and which is Happiness at its close Justin con-
;

receiving a thoroughly Greek education {Dial. fesses that his philosophy supplies no clear
c. 2, § 219). The name of his grandfather is account of the soul, of its capacity to perceive
Greek ; of his father and himself Latin. the Divine, nor of the character of its life ;

What we know of him is gathered almost the old man speaks with a decision that he
entirely from his own writings, and chiefly professes to owe neither to Plato nor to Pytha-
from his famous description of the studies goras, who are the bulwarks of philosophy.
through which he passed to his conversion, What teacher is there who can give certainty
given in his Dialogue with the New Tryphon. where such as these fail? asks Justin. The
The opening of the Dialogue discovers Justin old man replies that there have been men, far
walking in the colonnades of a city, which older than all these philosophers, men blessed
Eusebius identifies with Ephesus {H. E. iv. and upright and beloved of God, who spoke
18), shortly after the wars of the Romans by the spirit of God, and are called Prophets.
against Bar-Cocheba in 132-136 {Dial. c. i, These alone have seen the truth, and spoken
§ 217). To the Jew, who greets him as a it to men not as reasoners, for they go
;

philosopher, he recounts his philosophic higher than all argument, but as witnesses of
experiences, though we gain but little clue as the truth, who are worthy to be believed,
to where or at what time these experiences since the events foretold have come to pass
occurred. He speaks of his first longing to and so compel us to rely on their words, as
share in that wisdom " which is verily the do also the wonders they have worked to the
highest possession, the most valued by God, honour and glory of God the Father and of His
to Whom it alone leads and unites us " when Christ.
;
" Pray thou, then, that the gates of
with this hope he went successively to a Stoic the Light may be opened too for thee for ;

teacher, a Peripatetic, and a famous Pytha- these things can only be seen and known by
gorean, but in each case to no purpose. those to whom God and His Christ have given
Much grieved at this, he thought of trying the understanding." Justin saw the old man
Platonics, whose fame stood high. He went no more but in his soul the flame was fired
;

chiefly to one lately settled in his town, who and a passion of love aroused for these pro-
was thought highly of by his school ad- phets, the friends of Christ and as he reflected
;
;

vanced some way with him, giving him the upon it he found that here indeed lay the one
greater part of every day ;was delighted with and only sure and worthy philosophy.
the perception of the Incorporeal the con-
; This is all we know of his conversion. The
templation of the Ideas " gave wings to my scene is, perhaps, idealized it has a savour
;

mind, quickly I thought to become wise, and of Plato but the imagination of Justin was
;

expected that, if it were not for my dull hardly equal to producing, unaided, such vivid
sight, I should be in a moment looking detail of scenery and character. The de-
upon God for this sight is the fulfilment of scription would imply that he was somewhat
;

the Platonic philosophy." " While in this advanced in study, but not past the enthu-
frame of mind I one day had a wish for quiet siasms of earlier life. The event, apparently,
meditation, away from the beaten track of occurred in Flavia Neapolis, i.e. "our town,"
men, and so went to a bit of ground not far in which the Platonist teacher had settled;
618 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR
but " our town " may mean that in which he about him and converted. " I took delight,"
and Tryphon were conversing, i.e., according says one of them, Evelpistus, " in listening to
to Eusebius, Ephesus. It must have been Justin's discourse."
before the Bar-Cocheba wars, if it is from them When persecution fell sharply upon the
that Tryphon was flying when Justin met him. church, he was in the van of those who con-
The conversion takes the form of a passage sidered it their first duty to make public to
from the imperfect to the perfect philosophy ;
their judges the doctrine and life so foully
throughout his life it retains that impress. accused (Apol. i. 3, § 54). So, in the Dia-
He was not rescued from intellectual despair, logue with Tryphon, he speaks of the guilt he
but was in the highest condition of confidence would incur before the judgment seat of
when the old man met him. The aim with Christ if he did not freely and ungrudgingly
which he started on his studies was achieved open to them his knowledge of the meaning
when he became a Christian. Hence he is not of Scripture (Dial. n. 58, § 280 b).
thrown into an attitude of antagonism to that This freedom of apologetic crowned itself
which he leaves his new faith does not break towards the close of Justin's life in the three
;

with the old so much as fulfil it. He still, works which alone can be accepted as un-
therefore, calls himself the philosopher, still doubtedly authentic the two Apologies and
:

invites men to enter his school, still wears the the Dialogue with Tryphon the Jew. This
philosopher's cloak (Dial. i. § 217; Eus. H. E. same freedom brought him to his death.
iv. II ; cf. the Acts of Justin). From the The secret cause of his seizure is supposed
first, philosophy had been pursued with the by Eusebius to have been the enmity of an
religious aim of attaining the highest spiritual opponent whom he had convicted of ignorance, -

happiness by communing with God ; the Crescens the Cynic. " Crescens," Tatian
certified knowledge of God, therefore, pro- writes, " who made himself a nest in Rome,
fessed by the prophets, and made manifest in while professing to despise death, proved his
Christ, comes to him as the crown of his fear of it by scheming to bring Justin and
existing aspiration. myself to death as to an evil thing " (Or. c. 32 ;

One other motive he records to have affected cf. Eus. H. E. iv. 16). For the reahty of his
his conversion, i.e. his wondering admiration violent death for Christ we have the indubit-
at the steadfastness of Christians under perse- able testimony of his historic title, Justin
cution. " When I was still attached to the Martyr. For the actual account of it we are
doctrine of Plato, and used to hear the dependent on the Acts of his martyrdom,
accusations hurled against Christians, and yet which embody, probably without serious
saw them perfectly fearless in the face of change, the simple and forcible tradition
death and of all that is terrible, I understood which the 3rd cent, retained of the death-
that it was impossible they should be living scene. They have the appearance of contain-
" ing genuine matter.
all the time a life of wickedness and lust According to these, he
(Apol. ii. 12, § 50 a). This appeal, which the and his companions are brought before
moral steadfastness of the Christians had made Rusticus, the prefect of the city, and are
to him, he continually brings to bear upon simply commanded to sacrifice to the gods,
others (i. 8, § 57 i. 11, § 58 e, etc.).
; Per- without any mention of Crescens, or of
haps, too, the lack of moral reality and energy Justin's Apologies to the emperors. Justin,
in the doctrines of philosophy was not unfelt on examination, professes to have found the
by Justin, for his words seem sometimes to final truth in Christianity, after exploring all
recall the old man's taunt, "You are a man other systems ;this truth, he declares, con-
of words, and not of deeds " (cf. i. 14, § 61 e, sists in adoring the one God, Who has made
" For Christ was no Sophist, but His word all things, visible and invisible, and Jesus
was the power of God "). Christ, the Son of God, Who was foretold by
We have no details of his life after baptism. the prophets to be coming into the world to
He seems to have come to Rome, and, perhaps, preach salvation and teach good doctrine.
to have stayed there some time, according to He declares that Christians meet wherever
Eusebius (H. E. iv. 11). His peculiar office they choose or can, seeing that their God is
was to bring the Christian apologetic into the not limited to this or that place, but fills
publicity of active controversy in the schools. heaven and earth ; but that he himself, on
The collision with Tryphon in the Colonnades this, his second visit to Rome, held meetings
is probably but a specimen of the intellectual for his followers in the house of one Martinus
intercourse which Justin challenged by wear- only, near the baths of Timotinus. After a
ing the philosopher's cloak. The introduction brave refusal to sacrifice, and an assurance of
to the Dialogue appears to record a familiar salvation in Christ, he and those with him
habit. The Second Apology mentions a dis- were condemned to be beaten with rods and
pute with Crescens the Cynic (3, § 43, b, c). beheaded. They died praising God and con-
The memory of Justin's characteristic attitude fessing their Saviour. The faithful secretly
is recorded by Eusebius " It was then that
: carried their bodies to a fit burial.
St. Justin flourished,who, under the dress of Such are the fragments left to us of his life ;

a philosopher, preached the word of God, and between what dates do they fall ? The
defended the truth of our faith by his writings title of the First Apology is decisive it is;

as well as by his words " and the Acts of his addressed to the " Emperor Titus Aelius
;

martyrdom speak of Justin as sitting in the Antoninus Pius, Augustus, Caesar to ;

house of Martinus, a recognized place of meet- Verissimus his son, philosopher, and to Lucius,
ing for Christians, and there conversing with the natural son of a philosophic Caesar', the
any who visited him, imparting to them the adopted son of a pious Caesar." Here we
true doctrine. The persons condemned with have Antoninus Pius as sole emperor, with his
him are companions whom he has gathered two imperial companions, adopted by him as
— — ;

JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 619

sons at the request of Hadrian, i.e. Marcus may be thrown back as far in the reign of
Aurelius and Lucius Verus (cf. Neander, Ch. Antoninus as is consistent with the prominence
Hist, [trans.] vol. ii. 446, 1851). With this attributed to Marcion.
the Eusebian tradition agrees according to it,
; Of the date of Justin's birth we have no-
the first Apology was addressed to Antoninus ;
thing certain. Epiphanius states that he died
in the Chronicon it is assigned to c. 141, the when 30 years old. The evidence is not forth-
fourth of that reign. Antoninus reigned from coming. For the date of his conversion we
137 to 161 ;will 141 suit Justin's language ? have scarcely any evidence except that it vvas
According to some, this is not early enough, before the wars of Bar-Cocheba, 132-136 (Dial.
for the title omits to salute Aurehus as Caesar, i. I, § 217). Eusebius supposes he was uncon-
which he became publicly in 140. Against verted at the date of Antinous, a.d. 131 (H. E.
this lie several weighty objections (i) Lucius
: iv. 8), but it is doubtful if Eusebius had any
Verus is called, possibly philosopher, certainly ground for this except Apol. i. 29, § 72, which
" epacTTTjs wai^fLas," lover of culture but by ;
certainly does not require it.
140 he is only ten years old. (2) Marcion is The genuineness of the three writings al-
in the Apology the greatest type of heresy, readv mentioned is universally accepted. The
" with a following spread over every race of first Apology definitely pronounces itself to be
men." Justin's language seems to belong to Justin's the second obviously belongs to the
;

a time when Marcion's pre-eminence had over- first the Dialogue claims to be written by a
;

shadowed the earlier heretics (cf. Lipsius, Die Samaritan, who had addressed the emperor
Quellen der Ketzergeschichte, 1875, pp. 21, 22), its personal history of the writer exactly

and this could hardly be till well after 140. tallies with Justin's attitude towards philo-
It was under Antoninus (according to general sophy in the Apologies. The peculiar phrase
authority, cf. TertuUian, Clement, etc.) that dTro/xvijfj.ov€ViJiaTa tQv 'AiroardXwv occurs m
Marcion succeeded in putting himself in the these three works, and in them alone. The
front, and arrived at Rome. Yet, already whole tone of the works agrees with the
before the Apology, Justin has written a book period assigned. The external evidence
against him, with other heretics (Apol. i. 26, gathered bv Eusebius is strong and unbroken
§ 70 c). It is difficult to attribute to Marcion (cf. Eus. H. E. iv. 18).
this immense position in the very first years But it is otherwise with an Oratio ad
of Antoninus (cf. contra, Semisch, Justin, p. 73, Graecos a \6yot irapaivfTiKos irpbi 'Y,\\T]vas,
;

1840). (3) Justin professes to be


writing 150 or Cohortatio ad Graecos a fragment, irtpl
;

years after our Lord's birth, a round number, it 'AKao-rdcrews and a book, Tfpi Mova.pxi-a.%,
;

is true, but in a context where the object is to which must be classed as very doubtful
diminish the interval. Without very positive others are decidedly not genuine.
evidence against it, the year 148 i.e. Justin's Several works of Justin have been entirely
A.D. 150 — should be taken as the approximate lost (i) The book Against all Heresies, to
:

date. These reasons would place the first Apo- which he refers in Apol. i. 26, § 70. (2)
logy near the end of the first half of the reign Against Marcion, referred to by Irenaeus (iv.
of Antoninus. This would not conflict with contra Haer. c. 14; cf. v. 26), supposed by some

two other references to times to the deifica- tobe part of (i). (3) A book called ^'dXrijs,
tion of Antoninus, i.e. 131 (Apol. i. 29, § 72), and (4) TTfpi i/'i'X^5< in which he contrasts his
and to the wars of Bar-Cocheba, 132, i36__{3i- own doctrine with that of the Greek philo-
§ 72). Both have the same formula ti2 vvv :
sophers fEus. H. E. iv. 18).
yeyei'Tiixei'(i) TroXtfxtj} and 'Avtlv6ou tov vvv " Many other works of his," says Eusebius,
yeyevtj/x^vov. The expression is vague, but "are in the hands of the brethren." Evi-
requires the two events to be well within the dently he must have written a great deal, and
memories of Justin's readers. the three undoubted works still extant per-
The address of the second Apology has at for this voluminous character of
haps account
last, after many confusions, been determined writings. For these three pieces are
his
to refer to Antoninus again, and Marcus written loosely and unsystematically, and
Aurelius. read like the outpouring of a mind that had
It is indirect, and found in 2, § 42 c,
where a single emperor is definitely meant, ranged widely in heathen literature and philo-
and in the last chapter, where the rulers are sophy, and had massed a large store of general
spoken of in the plural in 2, § 43 b there are
; knowledge, which could be easily and effec-
two people in office, Pius the avTOKpdrwp, and tively brought to bear upon current topics,
a philosopher, who is saluted as son of Caesar without any scrupulous regard to the artistic
;

and continued reference is made to the or symmetrical appearance of the result.


mingled piety and philosophy of these per- Justin's writing, especially in the first
sonages. These two, with the well-known Apology, is full of direct and striking force;
titles, can hardly be other than Antoninus and it moves easily and pleasingly his thinking ;

Marcus Aurelius. This is made almost a is fresh, healthy, vigorous, and to the point ;

certainty when we consider that the second his wide knowledge is used with practical
Apology seems to have followed close upon skill his whole tone and character are im-
;

the first and bears all the mark of a sequel or mensely attractive by their genuineness,
appendix (cf. Volkmar, in Theolog. Jahrb. 1855, simplicity, generous high-mindedness, and
N. 14; cf. Hort, in Journ. of Classic and Sacred frank and confident energy.
Philol. vol. iii. p. 155 (1857), of which much In the first Apology, composed with much
use is made in the art.). This is clear, among more care and completeness than the second,
other things, from the references in the second he defines and justifies his position of apologist
to the first Apology (Apol. ii. 4, § 43 6, § 45 before the rulers, with supreme dignity and
;
;

8, § 46) as to a writing close at hand and fresh- confidence. He calls upon them to let it be
ly remembered. The date of the Apologies seen whether they are the loyal guardians of
; ;

620 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR


right and lovers which they are
of culture, by Empedocles and Pythagoras, Plato and
reported to be. He demands for himself and Socrates, by Homer and Virgil.
his fellows the justice of an exact and critical Here begins a defence of Christian doctrine,
examination, without regard to prejudice, on the ground of its likeness to doctrines
superstition, irrational panic, or any long- already held in heathenism (c. 21). We
established evil fame. It is, as it were, for alone are hated, even though we hold the
the sake of the governors and their justice same as the Greeks we alone are killed for
;

that he seems to be asking a trial, for, " as our faith, even though we do nothing bad.
for us Christians," he proudly declares, "we (C. 30.) He turns to a new objection.
do not consider that we can suffer any ill from " How do you know the genuineness of your
any one, unless we are convicted of wicked- Christ, or that He was not some clever magic-
ness or evil-doing you can kill us indeed, but worker ? "
;
Justin's answer is, by the proof
damage us you cannot" (Apol. i. 2, 54 a) of prophecy. The books of the Jews, trans-
;

" Princes who prefer prejudice to truth can lated in the LXX, in spite of the bitter hatred
do no more harm than robbers in a desert " of the Jews against us, speak, years before
(Apol. i. 12, § 59 e). So he opens his Apology, the event, of us and of our Christ.
which can be roughly divided into three divi- (C. 46.) A new objection were all men :

sions, cc. 3-23, in which he refutes, generally, irresponsible before 150 years ago, when
the false charges made against Christianity ;
Christ was born under Quirinus ? No
cc. 23-61 exhibiting the truth of the Christian there were Christians before Christ, men who
system and how it has got misunderstood ;
lived in the power of the Word of God, So-
cc. 61-68 revealing the character of Christian crates and Heraclitus, Abraham and Elias.
worship and customs. (C. 56.) The demons have deceived men
The charges against the Christians, en- before Christ by the tales of Polytheism and, ;

countered in pt. i., are: (i) The very fact after Christ, by the impieties of Simon,
of Christianity is itself treated as a punishable Menander, and Marcion but have never been
:

crime (c. iv.). (2) Atheism (c. vi.). How able to make men disbelieve in the end of the
can they with any justice be called atheists, world and the judgment to come, nor to con-
who reverence and worship the Father of all ceal the advent of Christ.
Righteousness, the Son Who came from the (Cc. 61-67.) He has spoken of Faith in
Father and taught us this, the whole Host of Christ and Regeneration of Life he will now ;

Angels and the Prophetical Spirit? "These tell what this exactly means and so proceeds ;

are they whom we honour in reason and truth, to describe the baptism by which the regen-
offering our knowledge of them to all who will eration is effected the reasons for this rite
; ;

learn of us." (3) That some Christians have its accomplishment in the Name of the Name-
been proved malefactors. Yes, very likely, less God called the Father, in the Name of the
for we all are called Christians however Son Jesus Christ crucified under Pontius Pilate,
much we vary. Therefore let every one be and in the Name of the Holy Spirit Who spake
tried on his merits. If convicted of evil, let by the Prophets. He describes (c. 65) the
him pay the penalty, only as an evil-doer, Eucharistic Feast to which the baptized are
not as a Christian. If innocent of crime, let admitted, and gives a brief account of the
him be acquitted though a Christian. (4) character to be attributed to the bread and
Christians are charged with aiming at a king- wine then consecrated and of the authority
dom. But this can hardly be a kingdom on on which this rests.
earth for, then, we should be ruining all
; He speaks once more of the feast, as it
our hopes of it by our willingness to die for recurs on the Sundays, when they all assemble
Christ. Yet we never attempt to conceal our together, and (c. 68) closes rather abruptly,
faith ; and here Justin makes a direct appeal. with the personal directness which throughout
"Surely," he cries, "we are the best friends gives dignity to the Apology. " If my words
that a ruler could desire, we who believe in a seem to you agreeable to reason and truth,
(lOd Whose ey& no crime can escape, no false- then give them their due value if they strike;

hood deceive we who look for an eternal you as trifling, then treat them lightly as
;

judgment, not only on our deeds, but even on trifles but, at least, do not decree death
;

our thoughts So oiur Master, Jesus Christ, against those who do nothing wrong, as if
!

the Son of God, has taught us." For the they were enemies of the state. For, if you
reality and true character of this faith in God continue in iniquity, we foretell that you will
through Christ, he offers the proof of the not be able to escape the future judgment of
Christian's moral conversion. "We who God we shall be content to cry, God's will
;

once delighted in adultery, now are become be done " !

chaste once given to magic, now are conse-


; He adds an epistle of Hadrian to Minucius
crated to the one good God once loving Fundanus, by which he could claim a fair
;

wealth above all things, now hold all our goods trial but he would rather ask that as a
;

in common, and share them with the poor matter of plain justice than by right of law
;

once full of hatred and slaughter, now live or precedent. This letter of Hadrian's, we
together in peace, and pray for our enemies, are told by Eusebius, was preserved by Justin
and strive to convert our persecutors." in its Latin form (H. E. iv. 8), and thrown by
All this is emphasised by our belief in the him into Greek. Its style suits the age of
resurrection of the body, in which we shall Hadrian (Otto, ed. of Justin, vol. i. note on
hereafter suffer pain for all our sins done here p. 190) it is considered genuine by Aub6,
;

(c. 18). Is this incredible ? Yet it is be- Ueberweg, doubted by Keim (Theol. Jahrb.
lieved not only by us, but by all who turn to t. XV. Tiib. 1856, p. 387). It gives so little
magic rites, to spiritualists, to witches, to to the Christians, that it seems hardly likely
frenzied seers, to oracles at Dodona or Delphi to be fictitious.
JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 621
The second Apology, possibly an appendix still preserves the order of nature, which the
to the first ed. p. Ixxxi.
(Otto, Volkmar, ; fallen angels have so corrupted.
Baur und Jahrb. t. xiv. Tiib.
Zell. Theolog. The effect of these Apologies upon the rulers
1855 ; Keim,
Protest. K.-Z. Ber. 1873, n. 28, of Rome is uiaknown ; but Justin's expecta-
col. 619), anyhow written at no long interval tion of death was not disappointed, and
after the first, begins abruptly with an appeal Marcus Aurelius still mistrusted the motives
directly to the Romans, but in reality ad- which made Christians martyrs and saw no
dressed to the imperial rulers (cf. cc. 3, 14, 15), reason to stay the outcry of the Roman crowd
together with the whole people. These rulers, when it demanded Christian victims. It
under whomthe affairs which led to the remained a legal crime to be a Christian.
Apology occurred, are, it has been argued, the Indeed, according to Roman ideas of govern-
emperor Pius and the philosopher Marcus ment, it could hardly cease to be criminal as
Aurelius, and, according to a suggested read- long as Christianity continued its private and
ing, Lucius Verus son of Caesar. The opening pecuUar organization and found it impossible
betrays by its suddenness, and emphasizes by to conform to the tests of good citizenship,
dwelling on the speed with which the Apology such as the oath to the emperor. The Apolo-
had been produced, the excitement under gies never hint at concession on such points,
which it was composed. "Things had hap- but persist that their present position is entire-
pened within the last two days in Rome," such ly innocent. Their vigour must have revealed
as the irrational actions of the magistrates, the irreconcilability of Christian life with the
which had driven Justin to write an Apology mass of pagan custom and temper in which
for his own people, who are, though the the solidity of Rome had its foundation.
Romans know it not and will not have it, The Dialogue with Trypho follows the first
their brothers, of like feelings with them- Apology, and probably the second also, be-
selves. tween 142 and 148 according to Hort ; in 155
(C. 2.) He relates the case which had so (Volkmar) ; or in 160-164 (Keim). It was
fired him with indignation it is very typical
; written to report to a dear friend, Marcus
of what Christians were subject to. The dis- Pompeius (cf. c. 8, § 225 d ; c. 141, § 371 b),
solute wife of a dissolute man is converted and a discussion which Justin had held with the
is anxious to separate from her husband. He Jews during the Bar-Cocheba wars. The dis-
holds out some hopes of amendment, so she cussion represents the Christian polemic
forces herself to remain, but he plunges into against the Jews ; but Trypho makes his
worse debauchery. She sends a writ of advance as a philosopher rather than as a
divorce and leaves him. Then this " good and Jew, and it is Justin who turns the talk to the
noble husband " bethought himself of accusing Jewish Scriptures by expressing his surprise
her of being a Christian. While her case was at a Jew being still engaged in searching for
pending, a certain Ptolemaus, the wife's truth in the pagan philosophers when he pos-
master in the faith, whom Urbicus had im- sessed already in those Scriptures the au-
prisoned, is challenged with being a Christian. thorized exponent of revealed wisdom, for the
Ptolemaus, brought up before Urbicus, is sake of whose secured certainty Justin hnnself
asked, " Are you a Christian ? " and on con- had left all other human systems. Trypho is,
fessing it is at once condemned to death. indeed, a curious type of Judaism; a light
Lucius a Christian publicly challenges Urbicus and superficial inquirer in the courts of the
to justify a decision which punished a man schools, surrounded by a band of loud and
simply for the name of Christian. " You, too, lively friends, he begins with a reference to a
are a Christian, I suppose ? " is the only Socratic at Argos, who had taught him to
answer he gets from Urbicus and on con-
; address courteously all who wore the philo-
fessing it he is condemned to death, declaring sopher's cloak, in the hope of finding, through
as he goes that he is glad to be free of rulers so the pleasant interchange of thoughts, some-
unjust and to depart to the Father and King thing useful to both. He smiles gracefully as
of Heaven. A third in the same way passes he inquires what opinion Justin holds about
to a like punishment " And 1 myself,"
; the gods, and, apparently, justifies his philo-
breaks in Justin, " look for the same fate, for sophic studies in the face of Scripture, by
I, too, have enemies who have a grudge claiming that the philosophers are equally
against me, and are likely enough to take this with Moses searchers after the Being of God.
way of avenging themselves Crescens espe-; The noisy friends having been avoided by
cially, the sham philosopher, whom I have retirement to a quiet seat, Trypho opens the
convicted of entire ignorance about the Chris- question with the air of a free and tolerant
tianity which he slanders." seeker after truth ; he has read the Gospel,
(C. 4.) It may be said in scorn, " Be off, and found in it a morality too high for real
then, to your God in Heaven by killing your- V>ractice, and is ready to acknowledge the
selves, and trouble us no longer " But ! piety of the better Christians. What he
Christians believe the world to be made by wonders at is that with so much goodness,
God to fulfil His purpose they are not at
; they should nevertheless live as Gentiles
liberty to destroy, as far as in them lies, the without keeping the pure laws of God, e.g.
human race, for whom the world was created. the Sabbath and circumcision, by which He
Nor yet can we deny our faith for this would ; separates the holy from sinners ; he wonders,
be to allow its guilt and to lie, and would too, how those who place their hope in a man
leave you in your evil prejudices. can yet hope for a reward from God. He
(C. 5.) " does God not help His own ? "
Why would gladly have all this explained (cf. c. 57,
He spares to punish and destroy the evil § 280 A ; c. 68, § 293 a). Trypho, then, is no
world, for the sake of this holy seed, the fierce Jewish opponent, prepared to attack,
Christians, who are the real reason why God but adopts the tone almost of an inquirer. It
"

622 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR


is the Jew under a new aspect that we find forming, another book is beginning to assert
here, the Jew of culture, of open and tolerant itself. The work is full of crucial interest,
mind, with the easy courtesy of the literary just because Justin appears at the moment
world. Before such apparent openness and when this is gradually becoming clear.
easy-going lightness it is perhaps not without In the two Apologies and the Dialogue
artistic skill that Justin hints at the fierce Justin covers a large part of the theological
and implacable hatred of Jew against Chris- field. His treatment is peculiarly typical of
tian which had tortured and slain Christians the earliest form of Christian speculation out-
without pity under Bar-Cocheba and made side and beyond the immediate lines laid down
Jews everywhere the most violent and re- by the apostohc writings. The apostohc
morseless of the church's slanderers and Fathers were rather practical than speculative.
persecutors (c. io8, § 335). The doctrinal works of people like Melito of
The Dialogue takes two days. Some fresh Sardis are lost. In the Apologists Chris-
friends of Trypho join him on the second day tianity, according to its preserved records,
(c. 118, §3460); he speaks sometimes of first prominently applies itself to the elucida-
them as if only two, at other times as if many. tion of its dogmatic position, and of them
One is named Mnaseas (c. 85, § 312). They Justin is among the earliest and the most
shout disapproval once, as if in a theatre (c. famous. But in considering his theology we
122, § 351 a). The whole is spoken as they must remember that we only possess his
sit on some stone seats in the gymnasium, exoteric utterances. He is not spontaneously
Justin being about to sail on a voyage. developing the Christian's creed, but is striv-
The actual argument begins at c. 10. The ing, under the stress of a critical emergencyj
points especially raised by Trypho were two, to exhibit it most effectively and least sus-
i.e. how the Christians could profess to serve piciously to an alien and unsympathetic
God and yet (i) break God's given law, and audience, prepared not merely to discuss but
{2) believe in a human Saviour (cf. c. 10, § to judge and kill. The whole position tended
227 d). The purity of Christian hving is to quicken the natural tendency of Justin's
acknowledged ;
mind towards an optimistic insistence on like-
the problem is its consistency
with its creed. nesses and agreements, rather than on differ-
Justin's argument may be roughly divided ences between himself and his opponents.
into three parts (Otto, Prolegomena). In cc. This is not said to discredit his utterances,
11-47 he refutes Trypho's conception of the but simply in order to consider them, as all
binding character of the Jewish law, which intelligent criticism must consider them,
refutation involves him also in a partial under their actual historical conditions. Jus-
answer to the second part of the problem, tin is on what is yet new ground to a great
i.e. the nature of the Christ in Whom they extent he is pioneering, he is venturing along
;

trust ;for the passing away of the Law turns unmarked and unexamined roads. Christian
on the character of the Christ of Whom
it doctrine is still forming itself under his hands,

prophesies. In cc. 48-108 he expounds the even on some essential and cardinal points.
absolute divinity of Christ, His pre-existence, Justin's Theology, then, begins in the pre-
incarnation, passion, resurrection, and ascen- sence of (i) Jewish Monotheism, and (2) of the
sion, by virtue of which the belief in Him is Primal and Absolute and Universal Cause of
proved consistent with belief in God alone. all Existence, posited by the philosophic con-
In c. 109 he passes to the necessary outcome sciousness of paganism. He has to state how
of these two principles —
the conversion of the his conception of the Deity stands to these.
He answers, that he believes (i) in a God
Gentiles, the new Israel, and the abandonment
of the old Israel, unless they accept the new identical with the God of the Jews " There :

covenant. The whole is rested on the is no other God, nor ever has been, but He

Scriptures, on the interpretation of prophecy. Who made and ordered the Universe that ;

Justin starts with a claim to believe abso- very God Who brought your fathers, Trypho,
lutely in the God of Israel here is his common
; out of Egvpt, the God of Abraham, Isaac, and

ground with Trypho (c. 11) both accept the Jacob" {Dial. 11, § 228 a). This God of
old revelation (c. 68, § 298 a cf. 57, § 279 b
; ;
creation is the one cause of all existence,
" I should not endure your argu- therefore known as the Father 6 irarrip tQiv
56, § 277 d). :

ment," Trypho says (c. 56, § 277 d), " unless 3\wv {ib. 114, § 342 a), or tup iravriop {Apol. i.
you referred all to the Scriptures but I see
;
8, §57 a). In Apol. ii. 6, § 44 d, he sums up all
you try to find all your reasons in them, and the names by which the absolute God may be
announce no other God but the Supreme known, irarrip, 9e69, Krlarrii, Kijpioi, Searrdrris.
Creator of the world." This is his cardinal and prevailing expression
The Dialogue, therefore, is a perfect store- for God —
the Father that He is the Maker and
house of early Christian interpretation of Ordainer and Lord of all creation. (2) But,
Scripture. This forms its wonderful value ; besides the Father, Justin undertakes to ex-
it carries us back to that first effort at inter- hibit the Divinity of a Second Person, the Son,
pretation which dates from St. Peter's speech o /j.6vos XeyS/j-evos Kvpiws vios {Apol. ii. 6, § 44),
at the election of Matthias, and knits itself so vidp avTov Tov dvTios Beov {ib. i. 13, § 60 c), to
closely with the walk to Emmaus, when the whom is allotted the second place, in honour
Scriptures were first opened and it was seen and worship, after the drpewTOP Kal del 6vTa
from them that Christ must suffer. The O.T. Qtbv yei'frjTopa tQv airdvTijjv. He is, primarily,
is still the sacred guide and continual com-
6 A670S, the Word of God, with God before
panion of the Christian life, the type of the
everything is there. Yet creation began, avvriv n^ irarpl wpb iravTiav rCiv
written revelation ;

by the side of it we already feel in Justin that TTOiTj/idru)!/ (Dial. 62, § 285 D). With Him the
a new power has appeared, a fresh canon is Father communicated {TrpoaofuXei), having

JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 623

begotten Him before all things (-^ivv7)tia. vwb the same time, both Geds Kai Kvpioi. and also
Tou QeoO iyey^ vvr]To). The manner of this dfTjp Kai AvOpuTTos (ib. 39, § 382 c). The
begetting is spoken of as a projection (ra5 rigour with which this is posited may be
6i'Ti dirb Tov irarpbs 'wpo^\7)dkv y^vvqixa). Such tested by the crucial case of the appearance
is the \6yoi, called by Solomon the Wisdom, to Abraham at Mamre. Here, it is allowed,
after a little discussion, that no angelic
who co-existed with the Father at that manifestation satisfies the language used by
moment when, at the beginning, by Him the Scripture. It is certainly God Himself Who is
Father made and perfected all things (Apol.
Dial. 62, § 285 d). He it is Who spoken of. Justin undertakes to prove that
ii. 6, § 44 E
this cannot be God the Father, but must be
;

is 6 Beoj, (XTTo TOV iraTp6s tCov &\ijov y€uvr)0eU,


other than He Who created all things
and Who is known as the Word, and the Wis- "other," he means, "in number, in person,
dom, and the Power, and the Glory of Him not in will or spirit " (ib. 56, § 276 d, irepos,
Who begat Him (Dial. 61, § 284 a, b). The ^
apidfii^ \^y(i}dW oi'j 7»'ui/u7j). So, again, he
Son the instrument of " Creation " {8l avrov
is
applies to this Divine Being the tremendous
iravra iKTiat) hence (in addition to His
;
words delivered to Moses from the midst of
primal names, A.6yo'i, Tioj) called Xpio-ris, Kara. the burning bush, and he will not suffer this
t6 Kexpi(Tdo.t TO. Travra 5i' avrov but this name ;
to be qualified or weakened by any such subtle
is in itself of unknown significance, just as the distinctions as Trypho attempts to draw
title " God " is no real name, but rather between the angel seen of Moses and the voice
expresses a natural opinion, inborn in man, of God that spoke. He insists, against any
about an unutterable fact. Christ's Being, such subtleties, that whatever Presence of God
therefore, as well as the Father's, is beyond all was actually there manifested was the Pre-
human expression, and is known only econo- sence, not of the Supreme Creator, Who cannot
mically for, if this is true of the title XpiarSs,
;
be imagined to have left His Highest Heaven,
it can hardly but be true of the higher names, but of that Being Who, being God, announces
A070S and Tt6s. This Adyos is identical with Himself to Moses as the God Who had shewn
the Man Jesus, conceived through the will of Himself to Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob. To
the Father on behalf of man, named Jesus as Him, therefore, apply the words " I am that
being a Man and a Saviour. Justin holds, I am." By these two cases, specimens of
then, the entire Divinity of Him Who was a hundred others drawn from Law and Psalm
born a Man and crucified under Pontius and Prophets, it will be seen how clearly the
Pilate. Nothing can be more pronounced or problem was present to Justin, and how
decided than his position it is brought to
; definitely he had envisaged its solution so far
the front by the necessities of his arguments as the O.T. was concerned in direct collision ;

both with the Jew and the Gentile. He starts with the Monotheism, of the Jew, he defends
with this position, that he worships as God, himself, not by withdrawing or modifying
a man Christ Jesus it is this that l^e has to
; his assertions, but by discovering the evidence
justify to the Gentile (cf. Apol. i. 21, 22, § 67). for His dual Godhead in the very heart of the
" In that we say," he says, " that the Word, ancient Revelation itself not in any by-ways ;

Which is the first-begotten of God, has been or minor incidents, but in the very core and
born without human mixture, as Jesus Christ, centre of those most essential manifestations
our Master, Who was crucified and died, and of God to Abraham, Jacob, Moses, and
rose again;" or, again, " Jesus Christ, Who Joshua, on the truth of which the whole fabric
alone was begotten to be the only Son of God, of Jewish faith and worship was reared.
being the Word of God, and the first-born Justin has next to consider in what relation
and the Power of God TpurdroKos Kai 5vvaiui.ii), these two Divine Beings stand to each other.
(

became Man by the will of the Father, Given the existence of a Second Person Who
and taught us these things." He justifies the can so effectually identify Himself with the
possibility of these statements to the emperors First as to be called 6 Qf6s, how can we con-
by appeals to Greek mythology, i.e. he is so ceive the harmony and unity of such a
fast bound to this belief that he has to run the duality ? Justin is clear that the distinction
risk of all the discredit that will attach to it between the two Beings is real it is a numer- ;

in the minds of the philosophic statesmen to ical distinction. The Word is no mere
whom he is appealing from its likeness to the emanation of the Father, inseparable from
debasing fables which their intellectualism Him as the light is inseparable from the sun.
either rationalized or discarded. That Justin He is a real subsistence, born of the Father's
is conscious of this risk of discredit is clear
Will (Dial. 128, § 358 B). The words used,
from cc. 53 and 54 of the first Apology, with
therefore, to express their relation are words
which we may compare the taunt of Trypho of companionship, of intercourse, of (tvv7)v,
(Dial. 67, § 219 b). So again, in the Dialogue,
npoaop.i.Xd (cf. ib. 62, § 285 c, d, where he
it the Christian worship of a man that
is
puzzles Trypho and the first necessity for brings out the fact of this personal intercourse
;

as involved in the consultations at the creation


J ustin is to exhibit the consistency of this with
the supreme monarchy of God. " First shew of man). They are two distinct Beings, but
me," asks Trypho (ib. c. 50), " how you can yet must be One in order not to dissolve the
prove there is any other God besides the absoluteness of the only Godhead. Such a
Creator of the universe ? " and this not in unity may be pictured by the connexion
any economical sense, but verily and indeed between a thought and the Reason that thinks
(cf. ib. 55, § 274 c) and Justin accepts the it, or by the unity of a flame with the fire
;

task, undertaking to exhibit Jesus, the Christ, from which it was taken. Each of these
born of a virgin, as Qcbi Kai Kvpioi ruiv 8vvd- examples of the unbroken unity has the short-
f/,fuv (ib. 36, § 254 e), to shew Him to be, at coming that they compel us to think of a
624 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR
stage prior to the dual condition in which that fount of the Divine life, the expressions used
which is now dual was single. What, then, about Him, and about the Son, must neces-
of the existence of the Word before It became sarily impute to Him an underivative, to the
the n-poji\7)d€v yewrnxa ? Justin is content Son a derivative Being and must, therefore,
;

with the statements: (i) That "before all tend to class the Son rather with the rest of
things," already " at the beginning," this pro- TO. yffrjTd than with the sole dyevriTdv. It
jection had been effected, the two Persons were could only be at the end of a most subtle and
already distinct (cf. ib. 62, § 285 d 56, § 276 ; delicate reflection that Christian logic could
C, rbv Kal npb iroir)(TfOos Kda/xov 6vTa Oedv). possibly realize that it was bound, if it would
(2) That besides this actual projection of the be finally consistent with itself, to class the
A670S there is a state which may be described derived Being of the Son, by virtue of the
as a condition of inner companionship with absolute eternity of its derivation, on the side
God the Creator (ctdi't;!'). This precedence is of TO dyev-nTov rather than on that of to, yev-qTo..
never distinctly asserted to be temporal by Justin, in the full flush of readiness to sweep
Justin. In the Dialogue the awiiv is stated in to the service of faith the dear and familiar
to be eternal in exactly that sense in which language of his former Platonism, may have
the yewTj/xa is eternal, i.e. as being " before all left himself unguarded and careless on this

things." uttermost point of the philosophy of the


Justin does not appear to definitely pro-
Incarnation but it will not easily be doubted

;

nounce on the question how the process of by any one who has observed how he de-
Begetting consists with the absolute eternity velops the full divinity of the Son over all the
of the Personal Word begotten. There is no ground which his logic covered with a bold-
ness and a vigour that, in face of the inevitable
precise realization of a A 670s ii'didderos and
obstacles, prejudices, misunderstandings ex-
TTpocpopiKos He hardly seems conscious of
cited by such a creed, are perfectly astonishing
this difficulty
thought and the flame
in his two analogies
he is satisfied with
of the — what answer he would have given if the
;
had once presented
final issue of the position
expressing, by them, the unity, and yet dis-
itself definitely to him.
tinctness, of the Father and the Son. He is Justin had also affirmed the moral unity of
content to state that this unity in difference
the Son with the Father. This is not stated
existed from the very first, before all created
to be the ground of the Unity. The analogies
things. His analysis seems hardly to have
of the thought and of the flame, on the con-
pressed back to the final question, which Arian
trary, imply a unity of substance to be the
logic discovered to lie behind all minor issues,
ground of the Kvpicos vioTrjs, but it is introduced
i.e. was there a moment when the Father was
in order to explain the consistency of his
not yet a Father ? Such a suspension of
belief with the reality of a single supreme Will
analysis is not unnatural, since Justin, in the
in the Godhead {Dial. 56, § 274), and the
writings before us, hardly enters on the con-
explanation naturally led him to affirm the
templation of the Nature of God in and to
complete subordination of the Son to the will
Himself. It is always as the source of all
things —
the Father, the Maker, the Lord of
of the Father. The Son is the expression of
the Universe —
that he presents God to us.
the Father's mind, the 5vi'a,aii> XoyiKrjv, which
He begat from Himself. He is the interpreter
It is (lod in His relation to His works that
of His Purpose, the instrument by which He
we contemplate. What He was in Himself
before all His works does not seem considered, designs. In everything, therefore, the Son
and it therefore all the more sufficient to
is
is conditioned by the supreme Will ; His
office. His very nature, is to be 6 d.yye\os, 6
state that God came to the making of the
world already dual in character. The vTTTjpeTTjs. All His highest titles, vl6s and
moment at which creation was to begin found /\u7os, as well as others, belong to Him by
the Son already existent, as 6 Oedi. in personal virtue of His serving the Father's purpose and
intercourse with the Father. With this he being born by the Father's Will {eK rod d-nb
leaves us, only affirming that that character Tov TraTpbs OfXrjcrei yeyevrjadai, ib. 61, § 284
of paternity which constitutes the relation of b). "I say that He never did anything but
God to the world had a prior and peculiar what the Maker of the world, above Whom
significance and reality in the relation that there is no God at all, willed that He should
united the absolute God and His Word (cf. do " {ib. 56, § 276). The Father is above all.
Apol. ii. 6, § 44, 6 /jLdfKJi Xeyd/j-evos Kvplujs vi6s). Trypho would not endure to listen to Justin
Justin's metaphysic, then, culminates in the if he did not hold this {ib. 56, § 278 b). The
assertion of this essential Sonship pre-existent Son is then subordinate, and perfectly sub-
to the creation. This being so, his language ordinate, but this subordination is such that
remains as indecisive on the ulterior question it can allow the Son to identify Himself
of the origin of the Sonship as is the language utterly with the Father, as with Moses at the
of Proverbs on the eternity of the Wisdom. bush, and so to be called 6 Kvpioi and 6 Beds.
In both cases the utmost expression for eter- In the expression " born of the Father's
nity that their logic had attained to is used. Will" we are once more close to Arian con-
It is useless to press them for an answer to troversy. Was there, then, a moment when
the puzzles of a later logic, which carried the the Father had not yet willed to have a Son ?
problem back into that very eternity which If so, how can the Son be eternal ? Yet, if
closed their horizon. It was inevitable that not, how was the Father's will free ? Justin
the natural and unsystematized language used has no such questions put to him. He states
before the Arian controversy should be capable this dependence of the Son for His very Being
of an Arian interpretation. Since the Father on the Will of the Father without anxiety as
is indeed slone dy^yr]rvs, the sole uaorigiaate to His right to be named 6 Bees, and to receive
; ;

JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 625


worship ia the absolute sense in which a Jew through the characters displayed.
all Of this
would understand that title and that worship. Justin gives instances in cc. 37, 38, 39.
And here, again, surely it was inevitable that Again, He is not only the inward force, but
the Christian consciousness should have so the outward object also, to Which all prophecy
stated frankly the subordinate and dependent is directed. The Jewish Scripture has in Him
character of the eternal Sonship, before it a permanent aim, a fixed canon it all ;

appreciated the subtle puzzle that would arranges itself round Him (cf. Apol. i. 31,
ensue when logic began its critical work upon § 73 a). To foretell Him and His work is the
the novel and double-sided conception. one purpose of prophecy. By it His whole
Subordination of the Son to the Father must life in its main outlines is described. His
represent the immediate, primary, natural, advent. His birth from the virgin. His coming
and intelligible method of presenting to the to man's estate, His curing of the sick. His
reflecting mind the reconcihation of the raising the dead. His being hated, and un-
duality of Persons with the unity of Will. known, and cruciiied, His death, resurrection,
The very name of Son, or of the Word, implied and ascension. His divine sonship. His mission
it. So far, too, the logic inherited from the of the apostles. His success among the Gentiles
philosophies would supply the needful formula. (ib. i. 3r, § 73). (2) Justin attributes a
It would take time to discover that Christian- revelation of the Word to the Gentiles, as well
ity held implicitly, in its faith in the entire as to the Jews to them He is the iiy7e\os,
;

Divinity of the Son, a position which, if ever the interpreter of the Father, not by prophetic
it was to be made consistent with the explicit anticipations, but by partial manifestation,
formula of the subordination, must necessitate of Himself. Every man in every race pos-
an entirely new and original logical effort, sesses a germ of the Word, by the power of
such as would justify the synthesis already which men knew what truth they did know,
achieved by the Christian's intuitive belief in and did what good they did do above all, ;

the absolute Divinity of a dependent and the philosophers and lawgivers who, in their
subordinate Son. This new logical effort was rational inquiries and speculations, were
made when Athanasius recognized the obeying the measure of the Word within them
dilemma into which the old logic of the Schools Kara, \6yov pLepos
( 5t' (vp^aecos Kai dewpLas,
. . .

had thrown the Christian position, and, in- ib. ii. 10, § 48 c). It is Justin who promul-
stead of abandoning either of the alternatives, gates the famous formula "Ocra irapa rrdai. Ka- :

evolved a higher logic, which could accept \cDj uprjraL i)ixGiv tuiv XpiaTiavQv icrri {ib. ii.
13,
both. For it must be remembered, if we are " We do not believe less, but more,
51).
to be impartial to Justin, that the Nicene §
thanEmpedocles and Pythagoras, Socrates and
controversy was not closed by the church Plato," " we approve what they
he says :

throwing over the subordination, while the rightly said


but our doctrine is higher than
;
Arian threw over the entire Divinity of the theirs " and so too with the Stoics, poets,
;
Son. Nicaea confessed the subordination, and
and historians (cf. ib. i. § 65 c ii. 10, 13).
made it theoretically consistent with the This is the principle the18, Alexandrians are to
;

absolute Divinity. This being so, the only develop. These ancient friends of Christ, for
possible test by which to try Justin (who
their obedience to the Word, were hated as
certainly held both the divinity and the
Christians are hated, as impious and curious
subordination) would be to ask whether, if
busy-bodies chief of them was Socrates, who
;
he had seen the dilemma, he would have held was
martyred for Christ. With him are men-
the subordination of the Son to be the primary
tioned Heraclitus, Musonius the Stoic, etc. In
and imperative truth to the logical needs of the
exercising of human reason to search out
which the fulness of the divine Sonship must
God such as these obeyed the power of the
be thrown over, or whether he would have felt
Word, the Reason of God {Xd-yifj Treipadh'TH to.
the latter truth to be so intimately essential
irpdyfj.aTa deioprjixaL /cat iXey^al 5ta \6yov
must
that a novel logic be called into existence
. . .

which should interpret into accordance with


it
deou rod dy'vwcTTOv iiriyifccaiv ib. ii. 10,
^TjrTjcrews ,

the subordination. It cannot but be felt that § 48 ; cf.5, § 55 E


i. \6yu} d\r)6ei Kai i^eraa--
:

Justin's faith is a great deal more pronounced tikQs). This general differs from the Christian
and definite than his Platonic logic ; that the revelation in the partial character of the X670J
one is clear and strong where the other is (TirepfiaTiKds each philosopher, etc., saw only
;

vague and arbitrary and, if so, that in a a part of the Word. Hence the contradictions
;

conflict between the two his faith would have of the philosophic system, the inconsistencies
remained supreme. Justin's temper of mind of human law some had one right part, some
;

is the complete reverse of that of Arius. another. Christians possess the whole Word of
On the ministerial activities of the Son for God, in the person of Christ Jesus; they, there-
the Father Justin is much more explicit. fore, hold the canon of truth which distinguishes
The Word has one chief mission from the all that was good and true of old, from the
Father, that of interpreting Him to man false and the confused with which it was mixed
hence He received the name of d.Yye\os (cf. {ib. ii. 9, 10, § 47). This distinction is radical
Dial. 56, § 275). He accomplishes this (i) to " since the germ and image of something,
the Jews by means of the Theophanies and given to man according to the measure of his
through the lips of the prophets. The Word capacity, is quite distinct from that very
is the direct inspirer Whose spirit moves the thing itself which permits itself, by its own
prophets, and Whose words they speak (cf. favour, to be so given and communicated "
Apol. i. 36, § 76 d). The whole manifold {ib. ii. 13, § 51c). This clear distinction
Scripture, with all its many parts and voices, exhibits the full reality of the personality
is, as it were, a great play written by a single attributed by Justin to the Word revealed in
author, the Word of God, Who alone speaks Christ it is personality which distinguishes
;

40
626 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR
itself so decisively from the influence and men. He himself could never agree with them
energy which it exercises it is it again which
; even if the main mass of Christians were to turn
makes the distinction between a partial and a against him but he speaks of these Ebionites
;

complete revelation to be so radical. The with a mildness that is rather startling in view
completeness of the Christian revelation lies of the immense strength and definiteness of his
in its being the revelation of Christ's Person own belief, with which his own church, as he
(cf. ib. ii. 10, § 48, 5s iffri Xpiffrds ii. 13, § 51).
; tells us, fully agreed. Apparently he is justify-
Hence, the Revelation of the Word concen- ing the possibility of the pis aller, which he pro-
trates itself in the Incarnation for so only, poses to Trypho.
; It is a novelty to Trypho, it
and then only, is the Word Himself in His seems, to hear of there being such Christians :

personal reality, as distinct from all his he expects them to hold what Justin holds.
activities, and superior to all His influences, Evidently, the common church faith in the
made manifest and actual to man. " Our pre-existence and divinity of Christ is so
truth is more sublime than all human doc- entire that it already has a theology which is
trine," says Justin, " on account of the anxious to use the agony in the garden and
entirety with which the Divine Reason has the bitter cry on the cross as proofs that Christ
appeared, for our sakes, as Christ, being was actually a man Who could suffer pain {ib.
manifested as body, and reason, and spirit " 103, § 331 D, etc.), as if it were the humanity
(ib. ii. 10, § 48 b). It is because the Word of that was more likely to be doubted than the
the absolute and ineffable God has " become divinity. This supernatural birth is justified
a man for our sakes, sharing our passions, and by Isaiah's prophecy (which he accuses the
curing our ills," that we surpass all the philo- Jews of having corrupted, by changing ">
sophers whose wisdom we claim to be ours wapdivos into vtavis, and which the demons
{ib. ii. 13, § 50). Christians now can worship have caricatured in the myth of Perseus) {ib.
and love the Word. They possess in Him a 68, § 294) ; by Psalm ex. :
" From the womb
doctor who will authoritatively determine the I begat Thee " {ib. 63, 286 d) and from many ;

it from the confusions


truth, separating intro- other texts in which Justin sees it fore-
duced by the demons {ib. ii. 13, § 51 ; ii. 9, shadowed that the blood of Christ would come
§ 48 b). He has thus made the and certain not by human mixture, but solely by the will
secure revelation of the Father, which Soc- of God {Apol. i. 32, § 74 Dial. 76, § 301).
;

rates pronounced to be so difficult and perilous His language on this goes so far that it seems
by the way of human reasoning and He has
; sometimes hardly consistent with the perfect
made this revelation effective and universal, manhood of Christ. He is " like a son of
by being Himself no mere reasoner, but the man," i.e. not born of human seed. His
very Power of the Ineffable God {SvvanU icrrk blood is called the " blood of the grape,"
rod TlaTpdi, ib. ii. 10, § 49 a cf. i. 23, § 68 a).
; because it came not to Him from man, but
This Power of God avails to ensure security of direct from the will of the Father. He is the
truth to those even who cannot use reasoning " stone cut without hands," etc.
effectively, to artisans and utterly unlearned The purpose of the Incarnation is to save
people. The identification of the man men from evil deeds and evil powers, and to
Christ Jesus with the antecedent Word of God teach assured truth {Apol. i. 23, § 68 c i-n-' ;

is entire and unhesitating. Nothing can dWayrj Kal iiravaywyfi rod avOpwirelov yevovs ;

exceed Justin's preciseness. " Christ Who ii. 9 § 48, b). He brings to bear the full
was known in part by Socrates, for He was divine energy (r; Si'ca/uis rod Warpis) on a race
and is the Word which is in every man, and diseased and deceived through the action of
foretold things both by the prophets and in devils. So He is the medicine to cure {ib. ii.
His own Person, when He took upon Him our 13. § 51 D), which He becomes by sharing our
nature and taught these things " {ib. ii. 10, humanity {tuiv iradQv rCiv rifxeripdiv ffv/xfx^Toxos).
§ 49 a). Here it is identically the same Per- He is therefore called the Saviour {ib. i. 61,
son Who is known to Socrates, and inspires the Whom
we receive remission of sins
§ 94 a), in
prophets, and taught mankind in the flesh and regeneration. His mode of action is by
(cf. ib. i. 23 " Jesus Christ, Who is the Word
:
(i) teaching, as the Word, which is no mere
of God, His First-born, His Power, His only
persuasive argument but is a Power penetrat-
Son, was also made man " cf. i. 63, § 96 a).
;
ing deeper than the sun into the recesses of
In consequence of the pre-existence, the In-
the soul {Dial. 121, § 350 a), enabling us not
carnation could only be effected by a super-
only to hear and understand, but to be saved
natural birth. Because the Christ existed
{.Apol. ii. 12, § 49). His truth is an absolute
personally in Himself before the ages and then
canon by which to sift the true from the false
endured to be born as a man, He could not
be begotten by man, but must be born solely in
human speculations, since He, the Entire
with certainty, amid the
by the will of the Father Who originally begat Word, distinguishes philosophies, that in them
Him. Such a birth would be unnecessary for confusion of the
a human Christ those, therefore, who held
which is His own working. So completely and
authoritative is He, that it is by His
;

that God's Christ was not pre-existent or uniquely


divine, would not hold that He was born
teaching alone that men rightly know and
Father and God {ib. i. 13).
supernaturally of a virgin. So Justin claims worship the one
saves, secondly, by suffering on the
that Trypho might accept the proofs that (2) He
so sharing in all the reality of our flesh
Jesus was Christ, even though he should fail cross :

(cf. Dial. 98, § 324 D, 7^7ovej' dv^pwTros avri-


to convince him of the eternal pre-existence
and virgin-birth of Jesus {Dial. 48, § 267 b) XrfiTTiKbs TradCjv). He destroys death by death.
and here Justin confesses that some who are He gains possession of men by the cross {cf
;

called Christians and acknowledge Jesus to ib. 134, § 364 c, 5i' aifxaros Kal fivffTripiov rod
be Christ, yet hold Him to be a man born of fftavpov KTi](rdiJ.fvos aiiTovs). By His blood
; ;

JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 627

He loosens the power of the devil {ib. 94, punction, and assures them of a kingdom to

§ 322 a) He removes death (ib. 105, § 332)


;
come, eternal and incorruptible (cf. ib. 139.
by His blood He purifies those who believe § 369 a). All on whom the power of the
(Apol. i. 32, § 74 a) hence, He, as crucified,
: cross comes are gathered with one mind into
is the Priest, the Eternal High Priest (cf. Dial. one synagogue, one church, a church born of
116, 343 e). Man's power to keep blameless, and called by His name, addressed by the
and to drive out devils, follows the economy Word in Scripture as His daughter, " Hearken,
of His Passion (ib. 31, § 247 d). Hence He O daughter " (ib. 63, § 287 b). This church
is called ^orfdbs and Xurpwrrii (ib. 30, §247 c), is described, with St. Paul, as one body, ^y

the hope of Christians is hung on the cruci- KaXeXrai Kal fern cQ/xa (ib. 42, § 261 a).
fixion of Christ (ib. 96, § 323 c). By His The eternal kingdom comes with Christ's
stripes we are healed (ib. 17, § 234 e, 336 d). second advent, in glory, as judge. He will
So He is the Paschal Lamb, Who saves from judge every man, up to Adam himself (ib.
death by the sprinkling of blood (ib. in, 132, § 362 a) then shall sinners and devils
;

§ 338 c). He saved, by submitting to that weep, for to them He will allot a place in that
which all men deserved for sin, i.e. the curse eternal fire which will destroy this world
pronounced on all who kept not the law believers He will admit to the kingdom, re-
;

therefore He was crucified, because the curse calling the dead to life and establishing them
lay on crucifixion but He was no more under in an eternal and indissoluble kingdom, them-
;

God's curse when He endured our curse than selves incorruptible, immortal, painless (ib.
was the brazen serpent, which was ordered 117, § 345, b). This is the Melchisedec, King
by God, though He had condemned all images. of Salem, eternal Priest of the Most High, Who
God saved of old by an image without violating will remake a new heaven and a new earth,
the Second Commandment He saves now, into which holy land His circumcised shall
;

by a Crucified, those who are worthy of the enter (ib. 113, § 341 a). This kingdom is
curse, without, for that, laying His curse on generally spoken of as in heaven, as not earthly
the Crucified. It is the Jews, and not God, (cf. Apol. i. II, § 59 A, etc.) it is a home with
;

who now fulfil the text by "cursing Him that God, for the sake of which Christians easily
hung on the tree " (ib. 96, 323). This cross despise all earthly delights and lusts and the
and suffering the Father willed for man's sake, fear of death. In one famous passage in the
that on His Christ might fall the curse of all Dialogue (80, § 306 b cf. 113, § 34i a) he
;

men He willed it, knowing that He would accepts the Jewish belief of a millennium in a
:

raise Him again from this death, as Christ restored and beautified Jerusalem he claims
;

testified on the cross by His appeal to the to have dealt already with this point, though
Father. This coming of Christ to he despised, no such explanation is in the Dialogue many ;

to suffer, to die, is justified by many appeals share this belief with him, he says, yet many
to prophecy, especially to Ps. xxii. (ib. 98, pious and orthodox Christians reject it only ;

§ 325), to Jacob's blessing, Gen. xlix. 8, 12, those who are, according to Justin, dpdoyvw/j.oi'ei
etc. It is the " hidden power of God which Kara iravra Xpiariavol, hold this faith with
is exhibited in the crucified Christ " (ib. 49, him, based on Is. Ixv. 17 and on the Revela-
§ 269 c). This power (Icrx^^ '""^ /j-varripiov tion of " one of themselves, by name John, an
Toii aravpov, ib. 91, § 318 b) began to manifest apostle of Christ," who speaks of a first resur-
its hidden efficacy from the day of the resur- rection and then a second eternal resurrection
rection ; those who have faith in the cross, and judgment of all men. Evidently there
and exercise penitence, are, through the power are no words of our Lord's to support this
of Christ, the great and eternal priest, stripped belief it is a pious opinion, resting on the
;

of the filthy garments of sin, and clothed with literal reading of the Apocalypse, held by the
new robes, and made priests, through whom most strict believers, but not necessary to a
everywhere sacrifices are offered (ib. 116, § pure and true faith (Kadapa koL fiKTe^Tji
344). Christ Himself is raised from the grave, ypihfirj). Far different are those who deny the
to be led up into heaven, by the Father, there future resurrection of the body altogether and
to dwell until He shall strike down all the believe in an immediate entrance of the souls
devils His enemies and the number of the of Christians into heaven: "let Trypho be-
elect righteous shall be fulfilled, when He will ware of deeming such to be Christians at all."
be shewn in glory on the throne of His mani- The resurrection of the body is a cardinal
fested kingdom. Then will be the great judg- point of Justin's creed (cf. Apol. i. 18 ff.) ;

ment of devils and sinners which is delayed essential to the reality of future punishment,
solely for the sake of gathering in all who may and to the fullness of a Christian's security
yet be willing to believe and repent (Apol. i. against all loss in death, and justified by an
45, § 82 D ii. 7, § 45 b)
; till
; it comes, appeal to the wonder of our first creation and
Christ sends down power on His Apostles, by to Christ's miracles (Dial. 69, § 296 a).
which they, and all who will, consecrate them- When this Advent will be, we know not,
selves to the one God (ib. i. 50, § 86 b 49, though it may be soon.
; It will be preceded by
§ 85 b). This present efficacy of Christ is the appearance of the Man of Iniquity.
evident in the power of Christians over devils, On the action of the Third Person, Justin is
who are bound and expelled by their adjura- not so definite he is continually speaking of
;

tion (cf. Dial. 76, § 302 a). This power, Him, but His person and office are not always
offered to all, manifests itself especially among distinguished with precision from those of the
the Gentiles, and is rejected by Jew and Second Person. He is there, in Justin's creed,
Samaritan, as many a prophecy had foretold a recognized element in it, constantly occur-
(ib. 91, § 319 A cf. 120, § 348,'etc. to end of ring
; but apparently Justin's metaphysic had
;

Dial.). It calls men by the road of faith into not yet had time or occasion to dwell on this
friendship and blessing, penitence, and com- point with anxiety or exactness. The most
;

628 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR


definite mention of Him the typical
is in carefully guarded lines of distinction in the
formula for the object of Christian worship Christian's worship. Elsewhere he shews
and sacramental service here He is distinctly
;
himself perfectly conscious of the impossibility
allied to the First and Second Persons as the of paying absolute worship to any but God
alone Third, Who shares with Them the adora- alone (Apol. i. 16, § 63) in order to justify
;

tion of Christians and the ministration of the adoration of Christ, he knows clearly that
grace (cf. Apol. i. 13, § 60 e, Ylvev/xa -irftofpTjTtKbp he must shew Him to be higher than all angels
iv Tpirr} rd^ei Tiixw/xtv, where he is explaining (Dial. 56, § 276). The whole argument with
what it is that Christians worship) again ;
the Jew exhibits the precision of Justin's dis-
{ib. i. 60, § 93 b), he claims for the Spirit the tinction between God and His angelic ministers
truth of that rb rplrov which Plato was sup- but, on the other hand, his language in this
posed to have suggested. Here, as in the unique passage evidences the reverential
former case, the rplrov is parallel to tj Sevripa service that could be offered, according to
Son, and must, there- Christian use, to those who had been fashioned
Xw/30, the place of the
into the likeness of Christ.
fore, be understood in something of the same
and that " second The Holy Spirit is concerned with creation
significance as that ;

(lb. i. 60, § 93 b), in His distinct personal full-


place " signified, we know, a difference in
ness, as 6 rplros, with a third station peculiar
number, in fact, in personality, not a mere
yet it included such a to Himself ('rpirr] x^P°-) ^^ the Godhead. His
logical distinction ;

unity of substance and will that the termino- main office is with inspiration ; He is rb
logy of the Godhead could be directly applied Uvevfia rb 'irpo(pririK6v His cardinal
; this is
to it, with the exception of those symbols of name. He speaks as Himself to man, using^
absolute supremacy, i.e. the titles, " Father," men as His organ (8ia Mwiicr^ws n-pof/j.rji'vcre, ib.
" Creator," etc. As the Holy Spirit is directly i. 60, § 93 b) here, since the words follow the
;

included within the lines of the object wor- statement of the place of the Holy Spirit in
shipped, so is He directly implicated in the the Triad, they must definitely intend Him, in
divine action upon men thus the baptismal
: His distinction from the Word, to be the
and sacrificial formula unite His name with spring of inspiration so, too, in the formula
;

that of the Father and the Son (ih. i. 61, § 94 of baptism, it is the name of irpc(f>ririK6i, which
a; 65, § 97 D 67, § 98 c).
; He, with the Son, marks His distinction from the Word and ;

is the medium by which praise and thanks- we must, therefore, apply to Him, in His separ-
giving are offered to the Father His is the ;
ate right and existence, the constantly recur-
third name in the might of which the Christian ring use of this name (cf. ib. i. 38, § 77 c;
47, § 84 A, etc., etc.), on all which occasions He
receives regeneration. One curious passage
gives Him a strange place Justin refutes
:
is spoken of as the direct author and speaker
(ih. i. 6, § 56 c) the charge of atheism by of prophecy, and prophecy is spoken of as
claiming that Christians honour and adore pecuharly the note of God (ib. i. 30, § 72 b.
{a(^'jp.(6a Koi irpocrKVvoufxev) " both God the etc.). This Spirit is one throughout It spoke ;

Father, and the Son Who came from Him, and once in Elias, and afterwards in the Baptist
the host of good angels that follow Him, and (Dial. 49, § 268). Yet Justin sometimes attri-
are made like to Him, and the Prophetic Spirit butes to the Word this action of inspiration
also." Here the angels are brought in front which gives to the Spirit His name (cf. Apol. i.
of the Spirit, through the need, probably, of 36, § 76 d) the prophets speak through the
;

expressing their unity with Christ by virtue of Word which moves them (so again ib. i. 33,
which they become the objects of Christian § 75 D, OiO(popovvrai \6yif
0di^ ; cf. Dial. 61,
reverence (e^o/.ioiovp.^voM'). Several attempts § 284 ;62, § 285 ; 63, § 236 d). In both cases
have been made to avoid this sudden intro- it is the effective agency by which the prophets
duction of the angels, by various interpreters are stirred to speak which is attributed to
(cf. Otto's note in loc. ed. vol. i. i, 21) but it ;
the Word; and Justin attributes this on
is hardly possible to read the passage otherwise grounds which he expects the heathen em-
than as it stands. It must be explained by perors to acknowledge, it is language they
its position Justin is quite precise and clear
;
must understand (Apol. i. 33). The action of
in other passages, where the position attri- God on man is so intimately bound up with
buted to the Holy Spirit is definitely marked, the Word, in Justin, that it is wonderful how
and this sentence, therefore, must be inter- much inspiration he attributes to the Spirit,
preted in accordance with them, not they be rather than how little.
confused by it. The angels are best intro- Justin holds very decisively the belief (i)
duced in close company with that Divine in good angels, attached intimately to our Lord
Person to Whom they are peculiarly attached, (cf. former quotations), messengers of God in
and from Whom especially they derive their O. and N. T., fed in heaven on some manna
title to sanctity (cf. Dial. 31, § 247 e Apol.
(Dial. S7, § 279 c), accompanying Christ in
;

52, §§ 87-88 Dial. 61, § 284 b), our Lord and (2) more
i- ;
His glorv on the last day ;

being Himself 6 &yye\os, and being therefore


particularly in bad angels, to whom the earth
named apx^c^Tpdrrtyos, the captain of the and man had been committed by God (Apol.
angelic host. Only through Him can they be ii. 5, § 44 a), but who overstepped their limits
reverenced ;while the Holy Spirit receives in wicked intercourse with women, who, from
worship by right of Himself. Justin, by them, bore sons, the devils they reduced the ;

throwing in at the end (rejid/xfda with rrpocKv- human race to servitude, by deceitful niagic,
i>ovp.ev, covers all the varieties of adoration and by terror, and by instituting sacrifices,
that his inclusion of angels may have made etc., to themselves, for which they lusted now
requisite ; and he adds \6y(i} Kal dX-ndeig. that they had known the passion of fleshly
TifiQvrts, as if to suggest that there were desires they sowed the seeds of war, adultery,
:
JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 629

crime. Chief among them


the Serpent, the is The entire change of character is beautifully
tempter of Adam and Eve, the Devil, Satanas, given in Apol. i. 14, § 6r, 15, etc.
a name ascribed to him by our Lord Himself The most guard of this pure living
effective
at His temptation, signifying Apostate and is belief in the resurrection of the body for ;

Serpent {ib. i. 28, § 71 b Dial. 103, § 331 b). ; this hope consecrates the entire man to the
The problem of the human soul occupies holiness of the eternal kingdom and renders
the chief place in the account of Justin's con- real the sense of future punishment we shall ;

version the philosophers were felt to be un-


; feel torture, hereafter, in our bodies without ;

certain and insecure in their conception of it, this, future pain would be unreal and meaning-
especially as regards its immortality, its con- less {ib. i. 18, § 65). God will raise and endue
sequent transmigration, and its relation to the with incorruptibility the dead bodies, now
divine substance. Justin holds that the soul dissolved and scattered like seeds over the
is no particle of the absolute mind has no ; earth {ib. i. 19).
life in itself is created
; is not life, but par- ; This human race will endure until the
taker of life, so that it could perish but ; number of those willing to become Christians
receives immortality by the will of God, as is is complete. It is God acts by the
because
proved by a mass of practical testimony, by free choice of man He does not destroy
that
the word of Revelation, and by its consonance evil by force, but offers men the chance of
with the needs of justice this immortality ; escape, and gives them time to use the chance
includes as its essential requisite the resur- {Dial. 102, § 329 a). The punishment that
rection of the body, without which Justice awaits sinners, when the end comes, will be
could not fulfil itself it will be given both to ; by fire and for ever. On this Justin is very
the just and to the unjust (cf. Dial. 4, 5, 6 ;
pronounced (cf. Apol. i. 8, § 57 bI "an :

Apol. i. 21, § 67 D 18, T9, § 65), though it is


; eternal punishment " {aiu>vLoy KoKacTLv), he
only rightly " immortality " for the just ; says, " and not a mere period of a thousand
for the others, eternal fire. years," awavaTui^ KoKd^tadai {Dial. 45, § 264
Man, according to Justin, has been impri- b) the kingdom is aiwctos Kai aXvros, the
;

soned in sin since the fall of Adam, the first KoXaais TTvpos is alJ:vios too {Dial. 117, § 345).
man, deceived of the devil, who fell greatly He uses the language freely and frankly, un-
by deceiving Eve hence " ye shall die " ;
hampered, apparently, by his theory of the
{Dial. 124, § 353 D, 6/iota's ry 'ASa/x Kal rri soul, which makes immortality dependent
its
Ei'y (^ofMoiov/xevoL. davarov eavrois ipydi^ovrai), on the Will of God, Who wills it in
the shape of
though originally made 6f(^ ofxaiio^ airadth Koi Holiness (cf. Iren. bk. iii. 36 cf. Apol. i. 21, ;

aBavdrovs 316 a). Man, as the


(cf. ib. 88, § § 67). He justifies the existence of reward and
angels, was made
incorruptible, if he kept punishment by the forcible argument, that,
God's laws. This Biblical view falls in with without them, you are compelled to believe
his account of the whole human race, as God indifferent to good and evil, or else good
sinning through the deceit of evil angels who and evil to have no real actuality both which ;

made them think their own bad passions beliefs are impious. The judgment is the wit-
possible in gods. This evil state, thus brought ness of God's regard to the reality of the dis-
on, is spoken of as a tyranny from which man tinction (cf. Apol. ii. 9, § 47 E ; i. 28, § 71 c).
had to be deUvered by another (cf. ib. 116, The church is that society of Christians in
§ 344 A Apol. ii. 6, § 45 a)
; Christ comes ; which the power of the regeneration is faith-
fTTt KaraXt'cet t^iv dai/xovwp. The whole race fully manifested and the pure knowledge re-
is under the curse for, if the Jews were, by
; vealed in Christ loyally held so Justin is ;

the laws of Moses, much more were the Gen- anxious to explain that not all so-called
tiles with their horrible idolatry {Dial. 95, Christians are real Christians, any more than
§ 322 d). Only by Christ is the curse removed ; all so-called philosophies mean the same thing
He, our Israel, wrestles for us with the devil {ib. i. 7, § 56 d). Many, professing to confess
{ib. 125, § 354 d). Only by His grace are Christ, hold impious and immoral doctrine,
the devils made subject. But Justin com- with whom the " disciples of the true and
bines with this a great anxiety to keep man's pure doctrine " do not communicate they ;

free-will intact he is continually explaining


; are marked as heretical by assuming the
himself on this point. Man is never deserted names of their founders, e.g. Marcion, Valen-
of God he possesses, after the fall, the ger-
; tinus, Basilides {Dial 35, § 253 d).
minal A670S, by which he discerns between The true Christians hold " the pure teaching
good and evil, between true and false (cf. ib. of Jesus Christ " possess " a pure and pious
;

93, § 320 D Apol. ii. 10).


;
doctrine " based on Scripture, and the words
The gift of Christ to man is primarily re- of Christ, not on human doctrine {ib. 48, § 269
mission of sins (cf. Dial. 116, § 344, etc.), d) prove them true by holiness (cf. Apol. i.
;

effected through penitence on man's part, 26, § 70 b) heretics may be capable of any
;

excited by his call into true faith in the wickedness for all Justin knows. He himself
Creator by Christ's power, sin is stripped off
;
has written a work against all the heresies
and remitted we are made regenerate {Apol.
;
{ib. i. 26, § 70 c). The heresies confirm true
i. 61, § 94 d). This regeneration accomplished believers in the faith, since Christ foretold
and the truth being now known and confessed, them (cf. Dial. 82, § 308 b 35, § 253 c), ;

we become bound, and fit, to accomplish a though they lead many away.
good life, to keep the commandments, to True believers are admitted to the body by
attain eternal life {ib. i. 65, § 97 c). We are the rite of baptism, on their acceptance of
clothed with garments prepared of Christ Christian verity and their promise to live
{Dial. 116, § 344) we are to imitate God's ;
accordingly {Apol. i. 61, §93 e). This bap-
own virtues, to exhibit ourselves worthy of tism is the true circumcision of the Spirit
His counsel by works {Apol. i. 10, § 58 b). {Dial. 43, § 261 d) works with the cross to
;
630 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR
expiate our sins {ib. 86, § 314 a) is appointed
; our Christ ordered us {wapeduKev) to offer
by Christ Himself for the remission of sins ;
(iroielv) for a memorial of His having taken to
and is our regeneration, by which we are Himself a body, and so become passible
born again out of a state of sin into Light and (iraffriTds) {Dial. 70, § 296 e).
Holiness so called " Illumination," ^utkt/mos
; Justin mentions, beside the Eucharist which
(Apol. i. 61, 74). It presupposes penitence followed the baptism, that the Christians met
and a confession of faith (ib. i. 61, 65). Bap- every Sunday (r; tov ijMov T]ij.epa), the day on
tism admits to the brotherhood, the assembly, which God began creation and raised Christ
where common prayers are made {ib. i. 65, § {Apol. i. 67, §97). All came in who could,
97 c), the kiss of peace given, and the Euchar- from country and town, to one place the ;

ist offered by the leader of the brethren, 6 memorials of the apostles or the books of the
Trpoecrrcos
; who takes the bread and water prophets were read publicly then, the leader ;

and wine brought him, and sends up praise preached and admonished after which all ;

and glory to the Father, in the Name of the rose together and prayed then the Eucharist ;

Son and the Holy Spirit at the end of his


; is administered as before described. At such
thanksgiving the people give their consent by times, offertories were made of voluntary
saying, " Amen " ; after this thanksgiving, gifts, laid in the hands of the leader, who dis-
evxapiffTia, the deacons administer the ele- tributed them to the sick, widows, etc.
Ever, says J ustin, " do we remind ourselves
' '
ments, with which thanks have been offered ' '

{tou €vxo.pi-CT7i0fVTOs dpTov), to cach one of this rite " which followed our baptism and ;

present and carry some to the absent. This " ever we live together we who are rich give ;

food is itself called the Eucharist no one may ;


to the poor and for everything that we have
;

eat of it who does not believe the truth taught we bless the Creator of all through Jesus
and has not been washed by baptism for it ;
Christ and the Holy Spirit " {ib. i. 67) send- ;

is not ordinary bread or wine, Koivbv dprov, ing up to Him solemn prayers (Troixird%) and
but "in the very manner that Jesus Christ hymns, not deeming Him to be in need of
becoming incarnate by the word of God, had, blood and libations and sweet smells {ib. i.
for our salvation, both flesh and blood, so have 13, § 60 c). Sunday, then, was observed as a
we been taught that the food, which has been peculiar day (cf. Dial. 24, 241 b) this is in ;

made a thanksgiving by the word of prayer contrast with aa^^aTi^eLv, and " regarding the
which He gave us, by which food our own flesh stars," which mean, distinctly, keeping the
and blood are, through a process of transforma- Jewish feasts; this the main "body of Chris-
tion, nourished, is both the flesh and the blood tians repudiated, so that it was by most
of that same incarnate Jesus." He proceeds treated as a criminal heresy to keep the sab-
to quote, from the books of the apostles, the bath, and they refused to hold communion
account of the institution of the Last Supper, with those Christians who still held to these
and compares it with the initiatory offerings Jewish customs. This severity Justin con-
in the mysteries of Mithra {ib. i. 65-66, § 97). demns but his whole argument with Trypho
;

In this passage the Incarnation is spoken of, accepts thoroughly the abolition of the Fourth
as elsewhere, as the work of the Word Him- Commandment. The sabbath symbolizes
self ; though He is Himself the Incarnate One Moses, and Christians hope not in Moses but
(cf. ib. i. 32, 74 B, 6 \6yos 6s aapKo-rronjdfis in Christ the Christian does not think him-
;

&vdpwwos ytfovev). self pious for keeping one day idle, but for
The principle of the
Eucharist is found in the principle of the In- keeping a continual sabbath. The sabbath
carnation (though the analogy is hardly to was given for the hardness of the Jews' hearts
(cf. ib. 10, § 227 B, etc. 19, §237 c; 21, § 238),
be pressed into details) ; it is the flesh and ;

blood of Christ, taken for our salvation, that Justin's conception of the Law is very
are identified with the food which food is strong and decided. Definite as he is against
;

itself so intimately allied with our flesh and Marcion, in his belief in the revelation of the
blood that it still nourishes our actual bodies true God made in O.T., he yet takes an ex-
Kara fitra^oX-qv, though it is the flesh and treme view of the partial, local and temporal
blood of Jesus, after the word of prayer, 81 character of the law. He bases himself,
mainly, on his principle of the complete uni-
ivxhs \6yov (by some rendered, " prayer of
versality of God God is everlasting, through-
:
His word," cf. Otto's notes, p. 181 of 3rd ed.),
which He Himself instituted, i.e. the words
out all time, over all people He is Judge of ;

all the earth His justice must be alike every-


ordained by Christ, given by Justin as "Do ;

vvhere. Hence He cannot shut up His rela-


this in remembrance of Me : this is My body :
tions to man within the limits of a law ad-
this is My blood." In the Dialogue, 117,
dressed to a single people, and for a limited
§ 345 A, Justin speaks again of the
" dry and
" period of time {Dial. 23, § 240 e 93, 320 c).
liquid food in which memorial is made by ;

Facts prove this for God was well-pleased


:

Christians, according to a received institution,


with Abel, Enoch, Noah, Melchisedec, though
of the suffering of the Son of God, t6 irdOos 5
they were uncircumcised and kept no sabbaths
nitrovdi. This memorial is there identified (cf. ib. 19, § 236 c). Again, if virtue lay in the
with those prayers and thanksgivings, offered mere act of circumcision, women would be in
by holy people, which alone are the sacrifices a worse case than men (ib. 23, §241 c). It
perfect and well-pleasing to God, in contrast would be against God's nature to value such
with the Jewish sacrifices, and in fulfilment of rites,and limitations, and new sacrifices, for
Mai. i. 10. These sacrifices {dvaiai) occur at their own sake, as if the good lay in them.
the Eucharist of the bread and of the cup ;
Did the Law, then, not come from Him ? Yes ;

the spiritual sacrifice of praise is then and but God in it accommodated Himself to the
there alone accomplished, by God's injunction. Jews it was for you Jews alone that it was
;

Isa. xxxiii. 13 is fulfilled in the bread which necessary because you forgot Him, He had
;

JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 631


to decree your sabbaths because you fell ; of the Christianity of 140 a.d. He regards the
away to idols, He had to demand of you sacri- Law rather as an evidence of pecuUar evil,
fices {ib. 19, §236e). ordered you a He than of peculiar good, in the Jews so he even ;

temple, lest you should


worship images. All says in scorn that circumcision only serves to
was done to distinguish the Jewish race from mark them out for condemnation, as the
the heathen and this, not on account of the
; accursed who are forbidden to enter Jerusa-
race's virtue, so much as for its proneness to lem it enables the Romans to exclude them
;

evil. To justify this, Justin appeals to the from the Holy Land.
" everlasting voice of prophecy " he quotes ; But if Justin is hard upon the Law, he is
the many words of the prophets in which very different towards Prophecy. On Pro-
sabbaths and sacrifices are declared un- phecy, on Scripture, he relies absolutely he ;

pleasing and unavailing. " I am not invent- asks to be believed, only so far as he can prove
ing all this," he says, but " this is what David his truth by Scripture. It is the word of God,
sang, Isaiah preached, Zechariah proclaimed, given by God through the Word, or chiefly
Moses wrote" {ib. 29). Where the prophets through the Spirit. This is reiterated con-
insist on the laws, it was because of the tinually. The whole O.T. is as a great
people's sin {ib. 27, § 244 b). But Justin has, drama, with various actors, but of which there
still, to account for the Law being, in a relative isa single author, the Spirit of God (Apol. i. 36,
sense, worthy of God and this He does by
; §760). It is a unity; so that Justin does not
distinguishing two elements in it, one eternal, believe that any one part can contradict any
the other temporal the two stand to each
;
other ; rather he would feel bound to confess
other chiefly as sign and reality; so Justin his own ignorance, where such seemed the case
discovers in the temporal provisions of the {Dial. 65, § 2S9 c). His definition is " Certain :

Law allegories of eternal truths. This is what men existed among the Jews, God's prophets,
was meant when Moses gave minute rules through whom the prophetic spirit foretold
about meats and herbs and drinks it was to ;
things before they occurred" {Apol. i. 31, §
symbolize the moral laws (cf. ib. 20, § 237 c), 72 b). Moses he calls the first after Moses
;

but the Jewish people took it literally. They he speaks of an "eternal prophecy going forth"
supposed, e.g., some herbs to be evil, some {ib. i. 31 ; Dial. 30,
§ 247 a). They
foretold
good while, in truth, God meant all to be
; Christ, His coming. His birth from a virgin,
good, if it was profitable to men. The cir- His man's estate. His curing disease and raising
cumcision under Joshua was allegorical (cf. the dead, His being hated and despised and
ib. iii. §
332). So, again, meat was a symbol fixed to a cross. His death, resurrection, and
of Christ so, too, the Passover Lamb, and
; ascension. His being, and being called, the Son
the scape-goats {ib. 40, 41, § 259 a). But if of Uod, His sending out apostles. His success
the Law was allegorical, symbolic, it neces- among the Gentiles {Apol. i. 31, § 73 a).
sarily ceased when the reality came. So it Justin offers a very storehouse of Christian
ended with Christ Who has enabled us to interpretations of Scripture, such as cannot be
sever the eternal from the temporal elements : classified briefly the strongest lines lie
;
:

He is the test and canon of what was real (i) In the exhibition of the divine plurality,
in the Law {ib. 67, § 292 c). through which Justin can, while retaining the
If Christ took away sin. He took away the absolute purity and separateness of God the
reason for the Law He gave us the circum-
;
Father such as the Jewish monotheism made
cision of the heart, which made the carnal imperative, yet justify and correlate all the
circumcision needless (cf. ^awTtadrjTe tV manifold manifestations of Himself by God
i/'UXV ^"6 dpyrjs Kal l8ov, rd ffQfia Kadapbv under local and temporal qualifications, all re-
eari :ib. 14, 231 d). Justin does not con- ceiving their true and complete elucidation in
sider that such a principle as this negatives the Incarnation. He Whose nature it is to be
the necessity of an outward baptism, or of an the expression and exhibition of the Father's
outward Sunday for both these he holds.
;
will, was at the tent door with Abraham, in the
Prophecy speaks of a new covenant to be made dream with Jacob, in the burning bush with
in a Christ and this for Jew as well as for
;
Moses, at the camp side with Joshua, above
Gentile, for both are to be saved in the same the cherubim with Isaiah, and now is made
Christ {ib. 64, § 287 b). Why, then, did Christ man of Mary (cf. Dial. 75, § 301 a).
keep the Law ? Out of the economy of God ;
(2) Justin ably gathers into one the many-
He accepted the Law as He accepted the sided characteristics of the Messianic prophecy
Cross, and the becoming-man it was in order : — the many human, mingled with the many
to carry out the Father's will but He was not ; divine, names attributed to the Christ He is :

justified by keeping the Law otherwise He


could not be the Saviour of all men {ib. 67,
;

triumphant

man yet to be adored He is suffering, yet
;

He saves His people. He is


;

§ 292 a) nor have introduced a new covenant. rejected by His people. Justin, in the para-
The admission of the eternal significance of dox of the Cross, has a key to the endless
Christ necessarily carries us back behind the paradox of prophecy. All the shifting double-
Law, to the conditions under which all men sided revelations of Godhead and manhood, of
had always lived {ib. 23, § 241 b). triumph and suffering, meet in a crucified king.
The failure of the Jews to believe in the He can give a unity of solution to a Christ Who
Christ is no argument for their being right is called " Angel of great Counsel
" and " Man"
;

for it is foretold all along that the Gentiles are by Ezekiel, " As a Son of man " by Daniel,"
the children of prophecy, the true Israel, the " Servant " or " Child " by Isaiah, " Christ
perfect proselytes it is of them that all the
; and " God " and " Adorable " by David,
good promises are spoken. The whole of the " Christ " and " the Stone " by many, " Wis-
end of the Dialogue is devoted to shewing this. dom " by Solomon, " Joseph, Judah, and the
We realize in J ustjn the complete Gentilism Star " by Moses, " the Morning Star " by
632 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR
Zechariah, " Suffering," and " Jacob," and Christ {Dial. 7, § 225 a). Christ's miracles
" Israel " by Isaiah, and " Rod," and are to be believed on the ground of prophecy
" Flower," and " Corner-stone " " cut without {Apol. i. 30). Miracles are, to him, proofs,
hands," and " Son of God," Who is " despised when they have been testified to, but cannot
and rejected," yet also is proclaimed " King stand alone as evidence.
of Kings, King of Hosts, King of Glory," and The other evidence to which Justin appeals
is " Set on the right hand of God," " Born of is the (i) purity of Christian precepts {Apol. i.
a virgin," yet " Existent before all the 14. § 61) (2) their constancv under torture
;

world," " the power of God, the glory of God," {ib. ii. 12, §50 a; Dial, no, § 337 b) (3) ;
" the Word," " the Lord," " the Captain of the consecrated lives of uncorrupt virginity,
the Hosts," " King," " Priest," yet also the conversion of penitents to holiness {Apol.
" Man," " the Stone," " the Child," " the i. 15, 62 B, c cf. ib. i. 29, § 71 e)
;
(4) the
;

Sufferer " (ib. 126, § 355 B 61, § 284 a 34,


; ;
exorcising of demons {ib. ii. 6, § 45 b)
(5) ;

§ 251 d). In giving force to this last charac- the existence of prophetical gifts in the church
teristic of the Christ, i.e. 6 nadrirbs, at the (cf. Dial. 82, § 308 b), as well as of gifts of
same time that he gave reality to the highest spiritual power {ib. 35, § 254 b), miracle, and
title, 6 debs irpocxKvvriTbs, Justin shews his healing {ib. 39, § 258 a).
power over the Jew, who can only hover aim- Wemay briefly ask what knowledge Justin
lessly between the two, unable to deal with shows of (i) Jewish, and (2) Gentile learning,
or accept either the lowest or the highest. (i) He refers frequently to Jewish modes of
Justin declares that no one ever understood interpreting texts and seems used to dealing
the prophecy of the sufferings, until Christ with them (cf. ib. 50,
§ 269 d) but perhaps he ;

opened it to His apostles. knows them rather


in their polemic against"
(3)He powerfulis in his deduction from Christians than in their own inner teaching.
prophecy of the failure, unbelief, and ruin of He charges them with escaping from texts

the Jewish race as the favoured people and against;
them by throwing doubts on the
in the change of the manifestation of God from LXX, while all the Messianic texts that can be
them to the Gentiles. Here he had much to accommodated to human affairs they attach
use which was only a stumbling-block to strict to whom they choose, but not to Christ {ih.
Jewish reliance on blood and privilege. 63, § 294 b). Thus they attribute the fulfil-
(4) He is successful in exhibiting the newness
ment of the triumphs spoken of in the Psalms
of Christ's covenant, the New Law, the New to Solomon, in Isaiah to Hezekiah {ib. 64,
Heart ; under this conception the continual § 287 a 77, ^ 302 b). Justin does not seem
;

discontent of God with the old sacrifices and to know of any Jewish theorizing on the
sabbaths gains intensity of meaning the calls problem of the A 670s. The Jews expect a
;

to wash and be clean, and put away sins, are purely human Christ {ib. 49, § 268 a), to be
vivified ;the prophetic types of a new and heralded by Elias in person, and anointed by
wider dispensation are brought into daj'light. him till which time the Christ is to be in
;

Cf. the whole latter part of the Dialogue. obscurity He will not even know Himself
;

Where Justin is weakest is, naturally, in {ib. no, §3360). The texts that speak of
knowledge. He is ignorant of the original Christ as passible, yet as God and adorable,
tongue and very arbitrary in his interpreta- they are compelled, Justin says, to attribute
tion of details he uses Christ as the accepted to Christ, but they refuse to allow this Jesus
;

key to the whole complicated history, in a way to be the Christ, though they have to confess
that to a believer is often full of devotional that the Christ will suffer and be worshipped.
suggestiveness, but to an unbeliever has no The divinity of Christ is, according to this,
argumentative force. Instances may be forced upon the Jews' belief by Christian
found in such chaps, as 77. 78 of the Dialogue, logic, but they do not know what to make of
or c. 81, etc. He often takes the wrong sense it, and are in straits.
of a passage. He interprets the passages con (2) As to Gentile philosophy, Justin's
demnatory of the Jewish sacrifices, etc., in general knowledge was evidently large but ;

"
a way that wins them
"
' a new meaning from
' ' it is a question how far he held to any system
'

Christ, but is certainly not their intended accurately or scientifically; he sits pretty loose-
meaning. He can only meet Trypho's sharp ly to them all. He places Plato highest, and
criticism on this point by appealing to his own delights in his doctrine of Eternal Ideas, but
presumption that God's approval of the Law no definite Platonic formulae are used the ;

can only have been an accommodation to the Ideas do not appear the doctrine of the Word ;

people's sins {Dial. 27, § 244 b). has general relations to Platonism, but that is
Prophecy is to Justin the main form of all it is itself utterly unUke any teaching in
;

Christian evidences and this for Gentile as Plato


; it belongs to the process of thought
;

much as for Jew. It is to prophecy he turns which has its roots in O.T., and works through
to prove that the Christian story of the Incar- Philo up into Christianity. He gives us no-
nation is not a poetic tale, without foundation thing of Plato's except the account of the
;

Greek mvthology offers no testimony to its " X as the law of creation, in the Timaeus,
"
own reality {Apol. i. 54, § 89 a). Christ's which Justin supposes him to have taken from
miracles were no magic or conjuring because the account of the brazen serpent and the ;

they were foretold {ib. i. 30, 31, § 72 a). Justin statement of the triad character of things,
is shy of arguing from miracles there had which is taken from an epistle attributed till
:

been too much false wonder-working for him lately to Plato. He declares Plato's account
to appeal to them. The miracles of the old of creation from formless matter to have been
Prophets he speaks of as worthy to win them taken from Genesis but he only means this ;

credit, since they were coincident with a lofty in the most general way, for he seems to fancy
desire to reveal God and with prophecy of that Plato's formula is consistent with Moses'
|
JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR 633

statement that this formless matter had itself He had a genealogy which, whether ours or
been made by God (cf. Apol. i. 59, § 92 d). not, he attributed to Mary, not to Joseph ;

It is obvious that Justin's relation to Platon- Cyrenius he calls the first procurator of
ism is quite external he holds the Christian
; Judaea our Lord's birthplace is a cave the
; ;

formulae, and whenever he detects a likeness Magi come from Arabia all the children in ;

to them in Plato, he delights in bringing it out, Bethlehem are killed our Lord is not " come-
;

without regard to context or system these; ly of aspect " He made ploughs and yokes,
;

likenesses are entirely arbitrary and super- emblems of righteousness the Baptist sat by ;

ficial, and can never be pressed. Justin's Jordan a fire shone in Jordan at our Lord's
;

canon of truth is absolutely in Scripture ;


baptism, and the words from heaven complete
from that standpoint his kindly love for the text of the second Psalm the Jews ;

Plato pleases itself in exhibiting in him frag- ascribed our Lord's miracles to magic John ;

mentary resemblance to the truth but if


;
ceased his mission at our Lord's public appear-
these fragments of truth are rooted in error, so ance. The Lord said, " There shall be
much the worse for Plato Justin has no idea
;
schisms and heresies " ; and " In whatsoever
of following them down. There is some- I find you, in that will I judge you."
thing to be said for his connexion with Stoic- Of these several are, probably, confusions
ism he approved their morals, and found them
;
or amplifications of Justin's own; some
right, to some extent, as to the ultimate end of represent additions found in various texts of
Nature but objects strongly to their physical
;
our present Gospels, and were, probably,
doctrines, their belief in fate, their physico- floating, popular, traditional interpretations
Pantheistic conception of God, by which they of various passages. The only remaining
must either identify God with evil and change, points definitely distinct are, the home of the
or else deny the reality of evil {ib. ii. 7, 8) ;
Magi, the cave of the Nativity, the posture of
he considers their physics inconsistent with the Baptist, the two sayings of our Lord.
their ethics. Musonius and Heraclitus he Does Justin, then, take these from tradition
honourably distinguishes of the Epicureans
;
or from any uncanonical gospel ? We must
he speaks scornfully {ib. ii. 15, § 52 b). hypothesize the gospel that he used, if it is
One problem remains to be considered, i.e. not ours for we have no relic of it in our
;

the relation of Justin to our four Gospels. hands, and here the remark seems convincing
The amount and frequency of his references (Sanday, Gospels in the Second Century, p. loi)
to our Lord's life and words, in the generation that this gospel, if it existed, belongs not to
immediately preceding the day in which the an earlier but to a later stage of the story
present Gospels emerge, secure and alone, than our canonical works.
into the full daylight of history, make him That they were books that he used he tells us
of salient importance in determining their frequently it is all " written "
; the books ;

character and the state of the present


;
are called by a name peculiar to Justin,
controversy, which has detected the subtle dTrofJiVT)ij,ovev/xaTa tu)v AwoaTdXccv the}' are •

transition, through which the gospel story records of our Lord's sayings and doings,
passed, from the conditions of a living, oral written either by apostles or their followers
tradition to those of formal written exemplars, {Apol. i. 66, § 98 B Dial. 103, § 333 d).
;

increases the importance of Justin, as he These books constitute r6 evayyiXiov {ib.


begins the definite references to written re- 10, § 227 e) a quotation
; is referred to this
cords, of a fixed character, capable of being ei'a77eXio;' {ib. 100, § 326 c) the awofivq- ;

used for devotional purposes. Are these tiov€v/j,aTa are themselves called evayyiXia, he
records identical in substance and in form tells us, if the text is right {Apol. i. 66). All
with our Gospels ? this points obviously to the existence of
(i) The substantial characteristics of our various records, " written either by apostles
Lord's life, down even to minute details, are, or by their followers," constituting altogether
obviously, the same for Justin as for us. We a single story, t6 evayy^Xiov. So far our
can compose, from his quotations, a full Gospels exactly correspond. More than this,
summary of the whole gospel life, from the it is almost incredible that he should not
angel's message to the Virgin until the have known Matthew, at least besides the ;

ascension, entering into many particulars, general mass of reference, which exhibits
illustrating prophecies, supplying the very remarkable resemblance to this Gospel, he
words of our Lord, in many instances relating has marked notices that distinguish Matthew
all the circumstances and, as a whole, it is
; from the other forms of the evangelical tra-
perfectly clear that the lines which limit and dition : the visit of the Magi, the descent into
determine in detail our Gospel did so, too, to Egypt, Joseph's suspicions of Mary, texts,
his. The same body of facts is selected the ; elsewhere unparalleled, from the Sermon on
same character, the same limits preserved, the Mount, the application of Is. xlii. 1-4 to
the same characteristics brought forward the ; the colt with the ass above all, the comment
;

same motives, the same interests are con- of the disciples upon the identification of the
cerned the same prophetic aspects dwelt
;
Baptist with Elias {Dial. 49, § 269 a Matt. ;

upon. This is noticeable, when we remember xviii. 11-13), the expressions f^oxos eh (Matt.
how very special and remarkable a choice V. 22), dyyapeijcrei (v. 41), etc., etc. The
must have been originally exercised upon our resemblance to Luke in places where we can
Lord's life, to select and retain the peculiar distinguish St. Luke's peculiar work from the
fragments, no more and no less, which are general tradition are in a few cases almost im-
collected and sorted by our Synoptists. possible to resist, such as the quotation of xviii.
(2) Justin makes some additions or changes 27 {Apol. i. 20, § 66) the use of the unique ;

in detail to this main story so few that they expression ladyyeXoc xx. 35-36
; and the most ;

can be mentioned and their character seen. remarkable expressions at the annunciation,
— ;

634 JUSTINUS MARTYR JUSTINUS MARTYR


iiriaKid^etv dvva/xL^ v\j/iaTov, etc., which are of our Lord [ib. 106, § 333) which receives its
directly Lucan. Cf., also, the last word on the proper interpretation only in Jn. xiii. and
cross. The only statement entirely peculiar xvii. ; Christ, says Justin, knew that the
to Mark is the naming of the sons of Zebedee. Father gave everything to Him, and Himself
Thus not only is the whole body of quotation demanded this. Such are the possible direct
accounted for with a few rare exceptions, references, rare, indeed, but in one case, at
from our Gospels, but in some cases where least, remarkably noticeable. Indirectly,
SS. Matthew and Luke affect by their Justin holds a doctrine of the Word, clear,
individuality the common original tradition pronounced, decisive, such as finds no home
Justin reproduces them. or base for itself but in the Fourth Gospel.
The inexactness of quotation is the one This doctrine Justin does not originate it is ;

opposing element. Justin is inexact, it is the accepted, familiar. Christian faith put
true, in his O.T. quotations, but he is more forth for the whole body, as their common
than three times as inaccurate in his N.T. belief, without hesitation, apology, anxiety,
ones. It is intensely difficult to know how scruple, or uncertainty. It presents the
much to discount for free combination which exact features of the Johannine teaching the ;

Justin uses extensively, how much for lack of universalism of the Philonic Adyos is identified
memory, how much for mere paraphrase or with, and made concrete by, the living, vivid
;

to determine, after such discounting, how individualism of the Incarnate Messiah. The
much evidence remains to shew Justin's use synthesis is done, is complete, without con-
of any other gospel besides our own. But if fusion or doubt. Justin is as definite, as full
Justin used some form of the gospel not now of sanctioned certainty on the reality of thia^
in the canon, it was either a text used by the doctrine of the Incarnate Word, as he is on
side of Matthew and Luke, and not differing the facts and discourses represented by our
from them in any degree more than they Synoptists. The Life of our Lord is already
differ from each other and if so, it would for him the Life as it is in fusion with the

;

multiply the evidence for the authenticity of dogma of the Word the Life as it is under
the narrative embodied in our canon or the manipulation that is displayed in the
;

else it was a text compounding and combining Fourth Gospel. Have we any cause of suffi-
with some freedom the other two and if so, cient force to have achieved so decided a
;

it supposes these canonical gospels to be result but the Gospel of St. John ? (Cf.
already the formal authorities. The suppo- Thoma, in Zeitsch. fiir Wissenschaft. Theolog.
sition that Justin used a perfectly distinct pt. 4 (1875, Leipz.) an elaborate discussion
:

form of the gospel story from any we now which concludes, " Justin cites only the
possess is met by the invincible difficulty that, Synopt., but he thinks and argues with the
though ex hypothesi of sufficient importance Fourth Gospel, evidencing its existence, but
and acceptance to be used in the public not its apostolicity " but cf. on last point, ;

offices of the metropolitan church as late as Westcott, Canon of N.T. p. 100.)


the boyhood of St. Irenaeus, it has, neverthe- In connexion with this there must be men-
less, totally disappeared. tioned a passage in Dial. 123, § 353 b, in which,
As to John, the main argument against its if not the gospel, then the first ep. of St. John
use is that from silence. Justin is full of can hardly be supposed absent from the
doctrine on the subject of the Word, on the writer's mind. The peculiar conjunction of
pre-existence and divine authority of Christ, KaXovfieda Kai icixiv is essentially Johannine
yet no words from the Johannine discourses (I. John iii. i, 2) as is the connexion of
;

appear in his work. This argument has " sonship " with keeping rets ivroXds Justin,
necessarily great weight, yet any single dis- again, knows the writings of the Valentinians,
tinct reference to John must outweigh such a and this (according to the evidence of Hip-
negative. Is there any such reference ? polytus and Irenaeus) must have involved a
In Dial. 88 Justin attributes to the Baptist knowledge of the Fourth Gospel. Altogether,
himself the words of the prophet, (ptjovri jBoQivTOi. the problem presented by his not quoting
This attribution, is one of those remarkable John is far easier to solve than the problem of
distinctions peculiar to St. John's Gospel. his not knowing it.
We know of no other ground for it. Twice As to the rest of the canon, Justin mentions
(in Apol. i. 22, § 68 b, and Dial. 69, § 296 a) the Apocalypse by name, attributing it to St.
he speaks of our Lord healing people infirm eK John {Dial. 81, § 308 a). He can hardly but
yevfTTJ^ : the only recorded instance of this is be thinking of Romans in ib. 23, § 241 b. He
the blind man in Jn. ix. 20, (k yivtrrji. In has references to /. Corinthians {ib. 14, § 231 d;
Apol. i. 61, Justin, it can hardly be doubted, III. § 333 c; Apol. I, 60, § 93), and to //.
is paraphrasing Jn. iii. 3-5. He is referring Thessalonians {Dial. 32, § no). He constant-
to a definite statement of our Lord and the ly repeats the irpwrdroKO's irdcnjs fcrtVew?,

;

statement a most marked and peculiar one which suggests Colossians he has references
;

occurs here only. Justin refers to it in a way which seem to recall Hebrews {ib. 13, § 229 d ;

that makes it hardly possible to suppose him Apol. i. 12, § 60, (XTrdoToXos 'Irjaovs Xpio"-
. . .

unacquainted with the continuation in John. t6s) his words appear in several places to
;

In its context in the A pology the reference to the point to Acts (cf. Apol. 50, § 86 b 40, § 79 a). ;

physical impossibility of a literal new birth is Everywhere he exhibits traces of St. Paul
singularly awkward (cf. Otto, note in toe). and his controversy with Marcion must have
Justin, moreover, claims that he is believing involved a complete acquaintance with the
Christ's own teaching when he believes in His theology and language of the great apostle.
Divine pre-existence which would be more
; Throughout Justin claims to shew forth,
intelligible of John than of the other Gospels with a certainty attested by sacrifice and
{Dial. 48, § 267 d). There is, again, a notice death, a solid body of certified doctrine, which
JUSTINUS JUSTINUS II. 635
apostolic authority sealed and secured ; Christ, by the troops under his command and bv the
as He had been by prophets and people (Chron. Pasch. 331, in Patr. Gk. \ci\,
foretold
announced to the world by apostles, is the 858), the choice being approved by the
assured ground of his faith (cf. Dial. 119, senate (Marcell. Chron.). He was a man of
§ 343 A ; Apol. i. 39, 42). The apostles are no education, and the affairs of the state were
the twelve bells on the border of the high- managed chiefly by his prudent minister
priest's garment, with the sound of whose Proclus the quaestor and afterwards by his
ringing the whole world has been filled {Dial. nephew and eventual successor Justinian.
42, § 263 c) ; the apostles are the evangelical For the most memorable event of his reign,
preachers in whose person Isaiah cried, " Lord, the end of the schism between the Eastern
who hath believed our report? " the apostles are and Western churches, see Hormisdas. For
" the brethren in the midst of whom " Christ his relations with Persia see Chosroes I. in
gives praise unto God (ib. 106, § 333 c). The D. C. B. (4-vol. ed.).
.Apologies havebeenpub. mEng.mtheAnte-Nic. In 523 Justin issued a constitution against
Fathers (T. & T. Clark) and in a cheap form in the Manicheans and other heretics (Codex, i. tit.
the A. and M. Theol. Lib. (Griffith). [h.s.h.] V. 12). The former were punished with exile
Justinus (3), a Gnostic writer, author of or death other heretics, pagans, Jews, and
;

several books, only known to us by the Samaritans, were declared incapable of holding
abstract which Hippolytus {Ref. Haer. v. 23, a magistracy or entering military service.
p. 148) has given of one of them, called the The allied Goths were exempted from these
book of Baruch. The account which that provisions. Because of the persecution of his
book gives of the origin and history of the Arian co-religionists, Theodoric sent pope
universe makes it to have sprung from three John I. in 525 to Constantinople to remon-
underived principles, two male, one female. strate with the emperor. [Epiphanius (17) ]
The first of these is the Good Being, and has In Apr. 527 Justin caused Justinian, who
no other name He is perfect in knowledge, had long taken the chief part in government,
;

and is remote from all contact with the to be proclaimed emperor and crowned, and
created world, of which, however, He is after- on Aug. I died, in his 75th year. [f.d.]
wards described as the Ultimate Cause. It is Justinus (13) II., emperor, nephew of Jus-
the knowledge of this Good Being which alone tinian, son of his sister Vigilantia. He was
deserves the name, and it is from the posses- appointed Curopalates or Master of the
sion of it that these heretics claimed the title Palace by his uncle (Corip. i. 138). The night
of Gnostics. The second principle is called Justinian died, a deputation of the senate,
Elohim, the Father of the creation, deficient headed by the patrician Callinicus, hurried to
in knowledge, but not represented as subject to his house and persuaded him to accept the
evil passion. The third, or female principle, crown. In the early morning he was saluted
identified with the earth, is called Eden and emperor by the populace in the hippodrome.
Israel, destitute of knowledge and subject to The same day (Nov. 14, 565) he was crowned
anger, of a double form, a woman above the by the patriarch John (Theophan. Cron. in
middle, a snake below. Of her, Elohim becomes Pair. Gk. cviii. 525), andreceived the homage
enamoured, and from their intercoursespring 24 of the senate and people in the hippodrome.
angels — 12 paternal, who co-operate with their Justin, on his accession, declared himself an
father and do his will, and 12 maternal, who adherent of the decrees of Chalcedon, and
do the mother's will. The principal part is restored to their sees the bishops who had
played by the third paternal angel, Baruch, the been banished by his predecessor (Venantius
chief minister of good, and the third maternal, Fortunatus, ad Justinum, 25-26, 39-44, in Patr.
Naas, or the serpent, the chief author of evil. Lat. Ixxxviii. 432). The edict is given in prob-
Lipsius regards this work of Justinus as ably a corrupt form by Evagrius (H. E. v. i,
probably written later than the middle of in Patr. Gk. Ixxxvi. 2789), and also by Nice-
2nd cent., representing in its fundamental phorus Callistus {H. E. xvii. 33). Soon after-
ideas one of the oldest, perhaps the very wards another edict was published, given at
oldest, form of Gnosticism, and as exhibiting length by Evagrius (H. E. v. 4), in which, after
the passage of Jewish Christianity into setting forth the orthodox belief as to the doc-
Gnosis. We cannot share this view. On trines of the Trinity and the Incarnation, he
comparing the system of Justinus with that exhorted all to return to the Catholic Church,
of the Ophite sect described by Irenaeus (i. 30), which should remain firm and unchanged for
the points of contact are found to be too ever and that no one should for the future
;

numerous to be all accidental. In the dispute about persons or syllables, probably


system of these Ophites the commencement is referring to the person of Theodore and the
made with two male principles, and one female writings of Theodoret and Ibas, and also to
On the whole, we
feel bound to refer the the question as to the Incorruptibility of the
system of Justinus to the latest stage of body of Christ. This edict gained general
Gnosticism, when a
philosophy, in which any approval, as all interpreted it in favour of
unproved assumption was regarded as suffi- their own views, but none of the various
ciently justified by any remote analogy, had sects returned to communion, in consequence
reached its exhaustion, and when its teachers of the emperor's declaration that no change
were forced to seek for novelty by wilder and was to be made in the church. Justin also
more audacious combinations and we are not early in his reign sent Photinus, the stepson of
;

disposed to quarrel with the verdict of Hip- Belisarius, with full powers to reconcile the
polytus that he had met with many heretics, churches of Egypt and Alexandria, but his
but never a worse one than Justinus. [g.s.] mission seems to have been fruitless.
Justinus (12) I., proclaimed emperor (July 9, For the secular events of his reign see Jus-
518) on the death of the emperor Anastasius tinus II., D. of G. and R. Biogr.
636 JUVENALIS JUVENALIS
In May 568 a rescript was issued to Spes- occupied thethird place, after Dioscorus and the
in-Deum, the archbp. of the Byzacene pro- papal legate, by the special order of Theodosius
vince in Africa, confirming the privileges of (ib. iv. 109). When the council of Chalcedon
his church and synod by which he was the sole met, one of the matters before it was the
judge of charges brought against any bishops dispute as to priority between Juvenal and
or clergy within his jurisdiction, and in Nov. Maximus, bp. of Antioch. The contention
(Clinton, Fasti, 825) a law (Nov. cxlix.) was ended in a compromise agreed on in the
promulgated addressed to the bishops and Seventh Action. Juvenal surrendered his
leading men of each province directing them claim to the two Phoenicias and to Arabia,
to choose the governors (praesides) themselves on condition of being allowed metropolitical
and to submit the names to the emperor, who jurisdiction over the three Palestines (ib. iv.
would invest them with their offices. At 613). The claim to patriarchal authority over
the end of 570 or the beginning of 571, Anas- the bp. of Antioch put forward at Ephesus was
tasius, bp. of Antioch, was deposed and Gre- discreetly dropped. The terms arranged be-
gorius substituted in his place. [Anastasius tween Maximus and Juvenal received the
Sinaita(I); Gregorius (31).] On May 18, consent of the assembled bishops (ib. 618).
572, a stringent law was passed against the Maximus, however, soon repented his too
Samaritans (Nov. c.xliv.). They were declared ready acquiescence in Juvenal's demands, and
incapable of inheriting under a will or an wrote a letter of complaint to pope Leo,
intestacy and of exercising testamentary who, replying June 11, 453, upheld the au-
powers except in favour of Christians. Other- thority of the Nicene canons, and promised to
wise the goods of the deceased were forfeited do all he could to maintain the ancient dignity
to the treasury. For the sake of agriculture of the see of Antioch (Leo Magn. Ep. ad Maxi-
fanners were exempted from these provisions. mum, 119 [9?,]). No further action, however,
Samaritans were also declared incapable of seems to have been taken either by Leo or by
holding any civil or military employments. Maximus. Juvenal was left master of the
Baptized Samaritans who observed the sab- situation, and the church of Jerusalem from
bath or other rites of their creed were punished that epoch has peaceably enjoyed the patri-
with perpetual exile. A Samaritan was de- archal dignity.
clared incapable of having a Christian slave ;
On the opening of the council at Ephesus,
if he bought one, the slave ipso facto became June 22, 431, Juvenal took a prominent part
entitled to his freedom ; while a Samaritan in the condemnation of Nestorius. As one of
slave became free on embracing Christianity. the eight legates deputed by the council, he
Justin at length was seized with madness, and aided in the consecration of Maxiniian in Nes-
died, Oct. 5, 578, after reigning nearly 13 torius's room, Oct. 25, 431 (Labbe, iii. 780 ;

years. [f-d.] Baluz 571 seq.). In retaliation, John of Anti-


Juvenalls (2) succeeded Praylius as bp. of och and the Orientals on their way back from
Jerusalem c. 420. The ruling object of his Ephesus held a synod at Tarsus, which excom-
episcopate was the elevation of the see of municated Cyril and the deputies of the council,
Jerusalem from the subordinate position it Juvenal at their head (Baluz. 939).
held in accordance with the seventh of the When, in 449, the " Latrocinium " met at
canons of Nicaea, as suffragan to the metro- Ephesus, Juvenal was the first to sign the
politan see of Caesarea, to a primary place in instrument of Flavian's deposition (Labbe, iv.
the episcopate. Juvenal coveted not merely 306). The natural consequence of this open
metropolitan, but patriarchal rank, and in patronage of heresy was that the name of
defiance of all canonical authority claimed Juvenal, together with those of Dioscorus and
jurisdiction over the great see of Antioch, the other bishops of the " Latrocinium," was
from which he sought to remove Arabia and removed from the diptychs of Rome and other
the two Phoenicias to his own province. orthodox churches (Leo Magn. Ep. ad Ana-
Scarcely had he been consecrated bp. of Jeru- toliiim, 80 [60]). This alarmed Juvenal, and
salem when he proceeded to assert his claims he faced completely round at Chalcedon in
to the metropolitan rank by his acts. A letter 451, denouncing the doctrines he had sup-
of remonstrance against the proceedings of the ported two years before at Ephesus. The
council of Ephesus, sent to Theodosius by the place he occupied in the council indicated that
Oriental party, complains that Juvenal had he had been compelled to abate somewhat of
ordained in provinces over which he had no his overweening pretensions. Anatolius of
jurisdiction (Labbe, Concil. iii. 728). Cyril of Constantinople and Maximus of Antioch both
Alexandria wrote to Leo, then archdeacon of took precedence of him, as did the Roman
Rome, informing him of this and begging that legates and Dioscorus (Labbe, iv. 79 et passim).
his unlawful attempts might have no sanction The proceedings had not advanced far when
from the apostolic see. J uvenal, however, was Juvenal, seeing the course events were taking,
far too useful an ally against Nestorius for Cyril rose up with the bishops of Palestine in his
lightly to discard. When the council met at train, and crossed over from the right, where
Ephesus, Juvenal was allowed to take pre- he had been sitting with the Alexandrine pre-
cedence of his metropolitan of Caesarea and to lates, to the Orientals on the left amid shouts
occupy the position of vice-president of the of "Welcome, orthodox one ! It is God Who
council, coming next after Cyril himself (ib. iii. has brought thee over here " (ib. 178)- This
445), and was regarded in all respects as the desertion of his old friends barely saved him.
second prelate in the assembly. The arrogant Evidence being read as to the violence with
assertion of his supremacy over the bp. of which Flavian's condemnation had been en-
Antioch, and his claim to take rank next after forced, and the brutality with which he had
Rome as an apostolical see, provoked no open been treated, the imperial commissioners pro-
remonstrance. At the "Latrocinium " Juvenal posed Juvenal's deposition, together with that
JUVENALlS JUVENCUS 637

of Dioscorus, Eusebius, and the others who study his tome to confirm him in the faith
had taken a leading part in these disgraceful (LeoMagn. Ep. 139 [171]). In 457 Leo ad-
transactions {ib. 323). Juvenal evidently felt dressed Juvenal among the metropolitans of
that consistency must now be sacrificed to the the East, with reference to the troubles at
maintenance of his position, and having given Alexandria, urging him to defend the faith as
his vote and signature to the deposition of declared at Chalcedon (Ep. 150 [119]).
Dioscorus (ib. 458) and signed the tome of Leo The statement of Basil of Seleucia that
{ib. 798), the objections of the commissioners Juvenal first " began to celebrate the glorious
were overruled. Juvenal and his four com- and adorable salvation-bringing nativity of the
panions were allowed to resume their seats, Lord " (Pair. Gk. Ixxxv. 469) must be inter-
amid a shout of welcome, " This is the Lord's preted to mean that he separated the cele-
doing." " Many years to the orthodox This
! bration of the Nativity and the Epiphany,
is the peace of the churches " (ib. 509). He which, till then, had been kept on the same
subsequently took part in drawing up the day, Jan. 6. We may gather from a letter
declaration of faith (ib. 559-562) and signed professing to be addressed by the bp. of Jeru-
the letter sent to Leo (Baluz. 1370). We have salem to the bp. of Rome that this change was
a Latin translation of a synodical letter in accordance with the Western practice.
written in his own name and that of the Basil of Seleucia, being a contemporary of
bishops of Palestine, a.d. 453, to the archi- Juvenal and associated with him in his public
mandrites, presbyters, and monks of the acts, may be regarded as trustworthy evidence
province confirming the decrees of Chalcedon for the fact. According to Basil, Juvenal
(Labbe, iv. 889). built a basilica in honour of St. Stephen on the
His enjoyment of his newly acquired site of his martyrdom, for which the empress
dignity was speedily disturbed. The decrees Eudocia furnished the funds. The death
of Chalcedon were not at all acceptable to a of Juvenal probably occurred in 458 (cf.
large number of the archimandrites and monks Tillem. Note sur Juvenal, xv. 867). He was
of Palestine, who generally held Eutychian succeeded by Anastasius. Tillem. Mem.
views, and they, in 452, addressed letters to eccl. XV. ;Ceillier, xiii. 247 ;Cave, Script.
Marcian and to Pulcheria against the conduct Eccl. i. 419 Oudin, i. 1270.)
; [e-V.]
of their bishop. The emperor and empress Juvencus, C. Vettius Aquilinus, a Christian
administered severe rebukes to the remon- poet, by birth a Spaniard, descended from a
strants (ib. 874, 879). The imperial dis- noble family. He was a presbyter, and com-
pleasure, however, failed to repress the turbu- posed his poem on the gospels during the reign
lence of the malcontents, and under the of peace established by Constantine (Hist. Ev.
leadership of Theodosius, a fanatical Mono- iv. 808 sqq. Hieron. de Vir. III. c. 84 Ep.
; ;

physite monk, patronized by the empress- Ixx. Chronica ad 332 a.d.). His works shew
dowager Eudocia, who had made Jerusalem an acquaintance with the chief Latin poets.
her home, they threw the whole province into (i) Historia Evangelica. This is the only
confusion. Juvenal'slife was threatened. The extant work attributed to him on the authority
walls and gates were guarded to prevent his of St. J erome. It is an hexameter poem on our
escape. But he concealed himself, and to- Lord's life, based upon the gospels. It is of
gether with Domnus made his way to the interest as the first Christian epic, the first effort
desert, whence he fled to Constantinople and to tell the gospel story in a metrical form.
laid his complaints against Theodosius and Its chief merit lies in its literal adherence to
his partisans before the emperor (ib. 858
;
the text. Commencing with the events of
Cyrill. Scythop. Euthym. Vit. 82 ; Evagr. Luke i. ii. (i. 1-258), it passes to the account of
H. E. ii.Theophan. p. 92). Marcian took
5 ; St. Matthew (i. 18), and follows that to the end,
decided measures to restore order. After omitting only a few short passages (xiii. 44-53i
holding possession for two years, Theodosius XX. 29-34, xxi. 10-13, xxiii. 15-26, 29-36, xxiv.
was expelled from Jerusalem, 453, and Juvenal 28), rarely supplemented from the other
was restored. Eudocia returned to Jerusa- Synoptists (v. i. 355, ii. 43), but having large
lem, and renewed communion with Juvenal, extracts from St. John. viz. i. 43-iv. (lib. ii.
her example proving influential to bring back 99-348), V. 19-47 (ii. 639 sqq.), xi. (iv. 306-404).
the large majority both of monks and laity it is saved from baldness by a clear fluent
to the cathedral church (Euthym. Vit. 86). style, which shews a knowledge of Vergil,
One of Juvenal's first acts on his restoration Ovid, and Lucan. It seems to have been widely
was to hold a council which issued a synodical known from the first and quoted with approval
letter to the two Palestines, declaring the by St. Jerome (ad Matt. ii. 11), pope Gelasius,
perfect orthodoxy of the decrees of Chalcedon Venantius Fortunatus (de Vita S. Martini, 1),
and denying that anything had there been Isidore, Jonas Scotus, Bede, and Alcuin (Migne,
altered in, or added to, the Nicene faith Prolepg. col. 42 sqq.). It has been edited no
(Labbe, iv. 889). Mutual ill-will and suspicion less than 30 times. The best separate edd. are
still embittered the relations of Juvenal to his by Reusch (Frankfort, 1710); Arevalo (Rome,
province, and Evagrius complains of the evils 1792) (reprinted in Migne) and esp. Huemer
;

which had followed his return (Evagr. H. E. (Vienna, 1891) in Corpus Script. Eccl. Lat.
ii. 5)- Leo (Sept. 4, 454) offered congratula- xxiv. Cf. Gebser, de C. Vett. Aq. Vita et
tions on his restoration, but told him plainly Scriptis(\\h.\.vi\i\i intro. and notes), Jena, 1827;
that he had brought his troubles on himself C. Marold, Ueber d. Evang.-buch des Juvencus
by his condemnation of Flavian and admission in seinen Verhdltniss z. Bibeltext in Zeitschr.
of the errors of Eutyches, and that having filr wissenschaft. Theol. xxxiii. p. 329 (1890);
favoured heretics he cannot now blame them. Kriiische Beitrdge zur Hist. Evang. des Juvencus
Leo expressed his satisfaction that he had von Dr. J Huemer in Wiener Studien (Vienna,
.

come to a better mind, and advised him to 1880), pp. 81-112.


638 KENTIGERN LACTANTIUS
(ii) St. Jerome {u.s) attributes to him this must have been with its 965 brethren in
" nonnulla eodem metro ad sacramentorum their " threefold division of religious observ-
ordinem pertinentia," but these are not extant. ance " (cc. 24-25).
(iii) Historia Vet. Testamenti. Only extant Meanwhile the sovereign had changed, and,
in parts, and its authorship doubtful. as a direct consequence, the religious feeling
(iv) Some later writers attribute hymns to of the kingdom of Strathclyde. Rhydderch
him, but there is no trace of any except the can- Hael, son of Tudwal Tudglud, had come to the
ticles in Hist. Ev. and Hist. Vet. Test, [w.l.] throne, and at the battle of Ardderyd (now
Arthuret, on the Esk near Carlisle), had de-
K feated (573) the heathen party under Gwen-
dolen, at Ceidio, whereby his kingdom was
Kentigern (Conthigemus, Cyndeym, Kente- made to extend from the Clyde to the Mersey,
gernus, Quentigern, Mongah, Munghu, Mungo, and thus to the confines of St. Kentigern's
bp. of Glasgow and confessor). St. Kentigern Welsh see. The first-fruit of this battle was
shares, with St. Ninian and St. Columba, the the recall of St. Kentigern to his Cumbrian
highest honour among the early evangelizers of diocese by Rhydderch, who, himself of Irish
Scotland. The time, extent, and sphere of St. extraction, had received the Christian faith
Kentigern's missionary enterprise are suffi- during his exile in Ireland. This date is of
ciently recognized. Strictly speaking, there is importance, giving one fixed point in St. Kenti-
only one Life of St. Kentigern known, that by gern's chronology. Rhydderch's call he at
Joceline of Furness, written probably c. 1180, once obeyed ; and consecrating his disciple
for bp. Joceline of Glasgow (a.d. 1174-1199), St. Asaph to fill his place in N. Wales, returned,
from two earlier memoirs, but there is an older to Strathclyde, but went no farther than
fragment which was probably one of the two used Holdelm (now Hoddam, Dumfriesshire), where
by him. From these all others are derived. for some years (probably eight) he had his
St. Kentigern, perhaps better and more episcopal seat. His leaving Llanelwy was a
popularly known as St. Mungo, was a Strath- cause of much lamentation, and a great number
clyde Briton. His parentage is doubtful. of the monks accompanied him. At Hoddam
He was born at Culross in Perthshire. From a joyous welcome was given to the saint by
his master there he secretly departed, and king Rhydderch, who is represented (cc. 31-33)
travelling westward, crossing the Forth prob- as going out with his people to meet him and
ably near Alloa, arrived at Carnock near as conceding to him all power over himself
Stirling, and thence was led by the oxen which and his posterity. At Glasgow the still more
carried the corpse of Fregus to Cathures, now famous meeting took place between St. Co-
Glasgow, where St. Ninian had already con- lumba and St. Kentigern. The districts they
secrated a cemetery. There he took up the evangelized were contiguous. Their meeting
unfinished work of St. Ninian. The picture was typical of the two currents of Christian
presented of the time and field of his labour faith and practice running alongside and over-
is a deplorable one. He was consecrated by a —
flowing the land viz. the Irish and the Welsh
single bishop, called for the purpose from — which were to come in contact again at the
Ireland (c. 11). He was raised to the episco- great rampart of the Grampian range and give
pate in his 25th year (c. 12), but all we know their character to the Scotic and the Pictish
of the date is that it was before his departure churches. The dedications to the N. of Glas-
to Wales. Ussher places it in 540, which is gow, and on Deeside in Aberdeenshire, make
accepted by Stubbs {Reg. Sacr. Angl. 157). it probable that St. Kentigern had extended
At Glasgow he formed a monastic school, and his labours into the regions of the South Picts,
a beautiful account is given (cc. 12-18) of the and up, at least, to the dividing line between
man, his austere life and humble piety. He them and the Northern. His death is various-
had a wide province, which he traversed ly dated from 601 to 614 ;the Welsh autho-
mostly on foot, and his message was to the rities generally giving 612, as in Annates
lapsed from the faith and to the morally Cambriae but the true date is probably 603
;

degraded, as well as to the ignorant pagans. (Skene, Celt. Scot. ii. 197 n. ; Bp. Forbes,
The disorders in the kingdom, and probably Lives, etc., 369-370). He died on Sun., Jan. 13,
the increasing power of the pagan faction, and was buried where the cathedral of Glas-
induced the bishop to leave his see and find gow now stands. The favourite name in
refuge in Wales a few years after his conse- dedications is St. Mungo. There are none to
cration (a.d. 543, Ussher). On his way he him in Wales, but there are in Cumberland at
spent some time in Cumberland, where his Aspatria, Bromfield, Caldbeck, Crosfeld (in
work is marked by churches still dedicated to Kirkland), Crosthwaite, Grinsdale, Lethington,
him (c. 23) ;thence he advanced as far as Mungrisedale (in Greystock), and Sowerby.
Menevia, where he visited St. David, and then His chief dedication and episcopal seat, which,
appears to have returned northwards, settling as in like cases, was near, but not quite at the
for a time on the banks of the Clwyd and ancient civil capital, Alclwyd or Dumbarton,
building his church at its confluence with the is the cathedral church of Glasgow ;
and
Elwy, at Llanelwy, now St. Asaph's, in Flint- there appears to have been a Little St Mun-
shire (cc. 23-25), c. 545 (Stubbs). The monas- go's kirk outside the city walls. [J-G.]
tery which he erected at Llanelwy was soon
filled. Old and young, rich and poor, prince
and peasant, flocked to it, and we have a very
graphic picture of how monasteries were Laotantlus (1), Luolus Caellus (or Caeclllus)
raised in ancient days before stone was used Firmianus, a well-known Christian apologist
for such erections, and how the laus perennis of the beginning of the 4th cent. " Rhetor:

was carried out in large communities, such as erat ille, non theologus neque inter ecclesiae
:
"

LACTANTIUS LACTANTIUS 639


doctores locum unquam obtinuit," as bp. Bull dressed to Asclepiades both are now lost.
;

says of him (Def. Fid. Nic. ii. 14, 4, and iii. The eighth, which had disappeared also, was
10, 20). Lactantius, enumerating previous claimed by Baluze as recovered by him it
;

Christian apologists, seems only conscious of was published in 1679 at the commencement

three Minucius Felix, Tertullian, and St. of his second book of Miscellanies, but with

Cyprian but this is explained by supposing the title Liber ad Donatum Confessorem de
that he limits himself to his countrymen, viz. Mortibus Persecutorum, instead of de Perse-
African apologists. St. Jerome mentions an cutione Liber unus, which is that of St. Jerome.
Itinerary written by him, in hexameter verse, Judged by its contents, the first is the more
of his route from Africa to Nicomedia, as accurate title. His four books of letters to
though he were then leaving home for the Probus, two to Severus, and two to his pupil
first time. The African church produced, as Demetrian, which St. Jerome regards as eight
did no other country, a succession of learned consecutive books (in Gal. ii. 4), are lost. The
advocates or rhetoricians, men of the world, twelfth and last work assigned to him by St.
who embraced Christianity from conviction, Jerome is de Opiftcio Dei, vel Formatione
and wrote vigorously in its defence, culminat- Hominis. The tract de Morte Persecutorum
ing in St. Augustine, each employing Latin ends with the joint edict of Licinius and Con-
with the freedom of a vernacular, and in the stantine, published at Nicomedia by the
case of Lactantius with so much purity as former, a.d. 313, at which the author lays
to have procured for him the title of the down his pen in celebrating the triumph of
Christian Cicero while Italy produced no
; God, with thankful joy and prayers day and
Christian apologists and, till St. Ambrose, no night for its continuance. He could not have
gireat theologian. Divines and men of letters, written thus after the differences between
as well as emperors, had to be sought in the Licinius and Constantine had commenced, and
provinces. In all his empire Constantine the former joined the ranks of the persecutors ;

could find no better preceptor for his eldest he therefore probably published it when
son Crispus, then destined to succeed him at leaving Nicomedia for Gaul. The first chapter
Rome, than this African Latin. This brought of his tract de Opificio Dei shews it to have
him to Gaul c. 313, the first date we can fix in been written after, probably only just after,
his career on any tangible grounds. Lactan- his conversion, and " Quam minime sim
tius had previously been invited to set up quietus, et in summis necessitatibus " are just
a school of rhetoric at Nicomedia. There, the words that might have been wrung from
doubtless, he was converted on witnessing a recent convert in a heathen capital, where
the superhuman constancy displayed by the Christians were having to choose daily between
Christians, and by his " best beloved death and their faith, and his old pupils were
Donatus in particular, on whose sufferings leaving him on learning what he had become.
in the tenth and savagest persecution, under Supposing Lactantius to have been converted
Diocletian, he dwells with so much tender- about midway in the persecution under Dio-
ness (de Morte Persecut. cc. 16, 35, and 52). cletian at Nicomedia, and then betaken him-
Donatus, he tells us himself, had lain in prison self to writing, penurid discipulorum, as St.
six years when the edict of Galerius, published Jerome says, there was abundance of time for
A.D. 311, procured his release. In Gaul, Lac- the composition of all his extant works during
tantius died, perhaps in the year of the Nicene the rest of his abode there, with the exception
council, A.D. 325. To judge from his extant of his Epitome. His Epitome and the con-
writings, he must have been somewhat austere, —
fessedly later insertions in his Institutions e.g.
soured it may be by failures, as he had no his appeals to Constantine (i. i, ii. i, vii. 26),
mean estimate of his own powers (de Opif. Dei, his mention of the Arians, and of the Catholic
c. I;
Inst. V. 1-4) a man of few and warm
: church, his promise of a separate work on
rather than of many friends thoughtful,
; heresies (iv. 30) which it would seem he never
learned, conscientious, and pure. Eusebius
(Chron. a.d. 319) speaks of him as having
fulfilled —
would all naturally fall within the
period of his removal to Gaul and tutorship
always been so poor as frequently to have to the heir-apparent, to whom he could have
lacked the necessaries of life. St. Jerome scarce failed to dedicate any fresh work, had
says it was his ill-success in getting pupils at such been afterwards written. Was he the
Nicomedia, from its being a Greek city, that pupil or hearer of Arnobius in his younger
induced him to write. St. Jerome gives a days that St. Jerome makes him in one place
list of his writings, but whether in the order in(de Vir. Illust. c. 80), or contemporary with
which they were published or not he omits to Arnobius, as we might infer from another
say. The first he names is the Symposium, (Chron. a.d. 326) ? There is nothing in their
which he calls a youthful performance theworks to connect them, and at the commence-
;

second is the Itinerary the third, the Gram-


; ment of his fifth book, in specifying, ex its qui
marian. Then comes the well-known treatise mihi noti sunt (c. i), those who had written
de Ird Dei, still extant, which St. Jerome calls against the assailants of Christianity pre-
pulcherrimum ; next, his Institutions, in seven viously to himself, he could scarcely have
books, extant also, on which his fame prin- passed over the work of Arnobius, if already
cipally rests next, his own epitome of the published, and still less if Arnobius, besides
;

same work, In Libro uno acephalo ("a com- being an African, had been his old preceptor.
pendium of the last three books only," as Cave We therefore prefer following St. Jerome in his
explains it but the first half was claimed by continuation of Eusebius, and making Lactan-
;

Pfaff to have been recovered a.d. 1712 from tius and Arnobius independent Lactantius
:

a Turin MS., and its genuineness, though dis- possibly the older of the two. Eusebius finds
puted, is still maintained). The seventh work a place for Lactantius in his Chronicon, but
named by St. Jerome was in two books, ad- none for his supposed master. The work of

640 LAE6HAIRE LAURENTIUS


Arnobius is limited to a refutation of the poly- pagan monarch of Ireland, reigning at Tara
theism of the day and the popular objections in the county of Meath. In the fifth year
to Christianity ; that of Lactantius, like the of his reign St. Patrick, having spent the
City of God by St. Augustine, which cites winter in the counties of Down and Antrim,
Lactantius with approval (xviii. 23), first in the spring determined to hold his Easter
exposes the false religions, but also expounds festival near Laeghaire's palace. The mon-
the true. It has been analysed by Cave arch, surrounded by his nobles and his Druid
briefly {Hist. Lit. i. 162), by Le Nourry priests, saw with wonder and rage the distant
thoroughly {ap. Migne, Patr. Lat. vi. 825), by light of the Christian paschal fire which was
Dupin, with his accustomed vivacity {E. H. to quench the lights of heathendom, and rode
veil. i. 185-187, Eng. trans, by W. W.), and by over in force to Ferta-fer-Feic to expel the
Mountain (Summary of the Writings of Lac- intruder. But mollified by the stranger's
tantius, i. 129). It is trans, in full, with notes, address, or frightened by his words of power,
in the Ante-Nicene Lib. (T. & T. Clark). he allowed the Christian mission to be estab-
The tract de Opificio Dei may challenge lished. We can hardly believe that he con-
comparison with Cicero's de Naturd Deorum tinued a persecutor while such progress was
in point of style and is far superior to it in made in the spread of the Gospel around him
depth and originality. The tract de Ird Dei. and in his own family. His queen may
against the Epicureans and Stoics, is intended perhaps have become a Christian his two
;

to prove God as capable of anger as of com- daughters, Fedhelm the ruddy and Eithne the
passion and mercy. The tract de Morte fair, were certainly converted and numbered
Persecutorum is a collection of historical facts among the saints. Several of his descendants
tending to show that all the emperors who (Reeves, St. Adamnan, 173) are beatified.
persecuted the Christians died miserably, and He probably died a pagan. The Four
may be compared with Spelman's de non Masters give the date as 458, but 463 is more
Temerandis Ecclesiis of modern times. likely (Ann. Tig., eo an., ap. O'Conor, Rer.
As for his theology, the indulgence should Hib. Script, iv. in). He reigned probably
be shewn him that all breakers of new ground 35 years. His body was carried to and buried
may claim. Tertullian was the model that he at Tara, in the S.E. side of the external ram-
looked up to most : and no writer had as yet part, with his weapons upon him, and his face
eclipsed Origen. His account of the origin turned towards the Lagenians, as if still
of all things (Inst. ii. 9) reminds us of the fighting against them. Vitae S. Patricii, ap.
speeches of Raphael and Abdiel in Paradise Colgan, Tr. Thaum. pass. Lanigan, Ch. Hist.
;

Lost (v. 577 and 808). We cannot read his Ir. i. c. 5 Moore, Hist. Ir. i. c. 10 O'Hanlon,
; ;

latest exposition of the Incarnation (Epit. c. Ir. Saints, i. 163 seq. ; Nennius, Hist. c. 59,
43) without discovering in it some well-known ap. Mon. Hist. Brit. pt. ii. 72 ; Keating, Gen.
phrases of the Athanasian Creed e.g. " The Hist. Ir. B. ii. pp. 325 seq. Four Mast, by
;

same person is the Son of God and of man, O'Donovan, i. 144-145 n. g; Wills, III. Ir. i. 60;
for He was twice born first of God in the
: Skene, Celt. Scot. ii. 100 seq. 428 seq. ; Todd,
Spirit before the origin of the world and
; St. Patrick, 436 seq. ;
Joyce, Irish Names of
afterwards in the flesh of man, in the reign of Places, 2nd ser. 230-231. [j-f^-l
Augustus." Dupin, after having expatiated Lampetius. [Euchites.]
on his many merits, sums up very justly : Laurentius (10), antipope, elected on the
" He is accused of doubting whether the Holy same day as Sjanmachus, four days after the
(ihost was the third Person, and to have some- decease of Anastasius II., which, according to
times confounded him with the Son, and some- Pagi (Critic, in Baron.), occurred on Nov. 22,
times with the Father ; but it may be alleged 498, Laurentius being brought forward in the
in his defence that he meant nothing else interests of concession, Symmachus in the
but that the name of the Spirit in Scripture is interests of unbending orthodoxy. Fierce
common to the Father and the Son. But conflicts ensued. The members of the senate
whatever the matter is, we find no footsteps as well as the clergy were arrayed in two
of this error in any of his works, what are now parties. At length it was agreed to refer the
remaining ; though in some places he takes settlement to Theodoric the Ostrogoth, now
occasion to speak of the Holy Ghost. He reigning at Ravenna as king of Italy, and he
seems to be of opinion that the Word was pronounced Symmachus the lawful pope
generated in time ; but it is an easy matter (Anastas.). Laurentius at first acquiesced,
to give a Catholic sense to that expression, as and accepted the see of Nucerina, but his
we have seen it done to others and we may
: partisans at Rome recalled him, and for three
be with justice allowed to do so, since he years after his election Rome was divided
plainly establishes the Divinity of the Word into two parties, headed by Festus and Pro-
in that very place." binus on the side of Laurentius, and by Faus-
For further particulars see besides autho- tus on the side of Symmachus. Anastasius
rities already cited, Le Nourry (Apparat. ad states that " those who communicated with
Bibl. Max. Vet. Pat. t. ii. diss. 3), Fabricius Symmachus were slain with the sword holy ;

^Bibl. Lat. lib. xi.), Oudin (de Script. Eccl. women and virgins were dragged from their
t. i. p. 307), Lardner (Cred. pt. ii. bk. i. c. 65), houses or convents, denuded and scourged ;

Schramm (Anal. Op. SS. Pat. vol. vii. p. 250), there were daily fights against the church in
Fessler (Inst. Patrol, vol. i. p. 328), Nouv. Biog. the midst of the city many priests were
;

Gen. vol. xxviii. p. 611. See esp. Brandt in killed; there was no security for walking in
Sitzungsberichte der phil.-histor. Klasse der the city by day or night. The ex-consul
Kgl. Akud der Wissensh. (Vienna, 1889-1891), Fanstus alone fought for the church." His
cxviii.-cxxv. [e.s.ff.] account implies that more influential laymen
Laeghaire (2) (Lagerie, phonet cally Leary), were on the side of Laurentius, but that the
;

LAURENTIUS Leander 041

clergy generally adhered to Symmachus. The the merits of Christ. Christ the second x\dam
matter was finally settled in the " synodus simply cancelled the sin derived from the
palmaris," the proceedings of which are sup- first Adam. Original sin therefore corre-
posed to be given under Synod. Romana III. sponds, in a manner, with the pre-Christian
sub Symmacho, the date of which is x. Kal. period. For actual transgression each person
Novembris. Laurentius is said, in a fragment is himself alone responsible and is to be re-
of a catalogue of the popes printed from a leased from it by penitence, with which the
remarkably ancient MS. by Joseph Blanchinus treatise is mainly occupied, and so has re-
in his ed. of Anastasius, to have retired to a ceived its present title. For other notices see
farm of the patrician Festus, and to have died Ceillier (xi. 95), Dupin {Eccl. Writ. t. i. p. 540,
there, " sub ingenti abstinentia." This ac- ed. 1722), Tillem. {Mem. x. 259, 260). [c.h.]
count evidently emanated from the party of Laurentius (36), Aug. 10, archdeacon of
Laurentius, if not from Festus himself (cf. Rome, and martyr under Valerian, a.d. 258.
Pagi's note on Baronius, ann. 502 i.). Cyprian {Ep. 82 al. 80 ad Successum) mentions

Authorities. Anastasius {in Vit. Sytn- the rescript of Valerian directing that bishops,
machi) Frag. Cat. Pontif. in Anastas. Bibl. ed. presbyters, and deacons should forthwith be
1718-1835, Rome, t. iv. Prolegom. p. Ixix. punished, and records the martyrdom of
Theodorus Lector (lib. ii.), Theophanes (Chron. Xystusbp. of Rome, in accordance with it on
p. 123, ed. Paris), and Nicephorus (lib. 16, Aug. 6. Laurentius, the first of the traditional
c. 33) ; Acts of Councils under Symmachus seven deacons of Rome, suffered four days
;

Libellus Apologeticus of Ennodius written in afterwards. The genuine Acts of this martyr-
justification of Symmachus after his final dom were lost even in St. Augustine's time, as
triumph. —
[j.b v.] he tells us {Ser. 302, de Sancto Laurent.) that
Laurentius (15), surnamed Mellifluus, his narration was gained from tradition in-
thought to have been bp. of Novara c. 507. stead of reciting the Acts as his custom was
A Laurentius, surnamed Mellifluus, from the (S. Ambr. de Off. i. 41). Laurentius suffered
sweetness with which he delivered homilies, is by burning over a slow fire, the prefect think-
mentioned by Sigebert {Scr. Eccl. c. 120 in ing thus to extort the vast treasures which
Patr. Lat. clx. 572) as the author of a treatise he believed the Christians to have concealed.
de Diiobus Temporibus, viz. one period from He was buried in the Via Tiburtina in the
Adam to Christ, the other from Christ to the cemetery of Cyriaca by Hippolytus and Jus-
end of the world. That this Laurentius was tinus, a presbyter, where Constantine the
the presbyter who instructed Gaudentius the Great is said to have built a church in honour
first bp. of Novara was maintained by Cotta, of the martyr, which pope Damasus rebuilt or
an outline of whose arguments may be seen repaired. Few martyrdoms of the first three
in the Acta Eruditorum (suppl. t. ii. pp. 525, centuries are better attested than this one.
526, ed. Lips. 1696). La Bigne {Max. Bibl. St Laurentius is commemorated in the canon
Pat. t. ix. p. 465, Lugd. 1677) suspects that of the Roman Mass. His name occurs in the
Laurentius Mellifluus was bp. of Novara, and most ancient Calendars, as Catalog. Liberianus
subsequently the 25th bp. of Milan who is or Bucherianus (4th cent.), in the Calendar of
praised by Ennodius in his first Dictio. La Ptolemeus Silvius (5th cent.), and in others
Bigne grounds his opinion on certain allusions described under Calendar in D. C. A. (cf.
of Ennodius in his second Dictio, which was Smedt, Introd. ad Hist. Ecclesiast. pp. 199-219,
sent to Honoratus, bp. of Novara {e.g. Patr. 514). He is commemorated by Prudentius in
Lat. Ixiii. 269 b). Other corroborative passages his Peristeph. {Mart. Rom. Vet. ; Mart. Adon.,
have been adduced by Mabillon {ut inf.), as Usuard. ; Tillem. Mem. iv. 38 Ceillier, ii.
;

where Ennodius describes Laurentius bp. of 423 ; Fleury, H. E. vii. 38, xi. 36, xviii. 33).
Milan pacifying his haughty brethren by Cf. Fronton, Ep. et Dissert. Eccl. p. 219 (1720),
honeyed words of conciliation ("blandimen- where, in a note on Aug. ro, in Rom. Kal., an
torum melle," ib. 267 a). The historians of accurate account is given of the churches built
literature usually therefore designate Lauren- at Rome in his honour. [g.t.s.]
tius Mellifluus bp. of Novara, but he is not Leander (2), metropolitan bp. of Seville
admitted by the historians of the see, as from (?) 575 to 600. His life covers the most
Ughelli (Ital. Sac. iv. 692) and Cappelletti (Le important period of Visigothic Christianity,
Chiese d' Ital. xiv. 526). Three extant treatises and with Leovigild, Hermenigild, and
are ascribed to Laurentius Mellifluus, viz. two Reccared he plays an indispensable part in
homilies, de Poenitentia and de Eleemosyna, that drama, half- political, half -religious,
printed by La Bigne in his Bibliotheca, and a which issued in the conversion council of 589.
treatise de Muliere Cananaea, printed by All that is historically known of the origin of
Mabillon with a note on the author, supporting the famous family, which included his two
the view of La Bigne, in his Analecta (p. 55, brothers Isidore and Fulgentitts, and their
ed. 1723). The homilies are in La Bigne only sister Florentina, is derived from the
(Max. Bib. Pat. t. ix. p. 465, Lug. 1677) and opening sentence in Isidore's Life of Leander
the three treatises in Migne (Pair. Lat. Ixvi. 87) {de Vir. III. c. 41 ;Esp. Sagr. v. 463) and
with both La Bigne's and Mabillon's notices of from the concluding chapter of Leander's
the author. Cave mistakenly says (i. 493) Regula, or Libellus ad Florentinam {Esp. Sagr.
that the de Duobus Temporibus is lost, for it ix. 355). Their father was Severianus " Car-
is evidently the homily de Poenitentia, which thaginensis Provinciae." At some unknown
opens with an exposition of the " duo tem- date, while Florentina was a child, the family
pora," which terms he employs somewhat in left their native place {Libell. ad Florent. c.
the sense of the two dispensations for the 21), and settled probably at Seville. It is
divine pardon of sin. The sin inherited from probable that Leander was born between 535
Adam is in baptism entirely put away through and 540. He would thus be a youth at the
41
-

642 LEANDER LEANDER


time of the family exile. Before 579, the ably to be traced to him. They are quite in
date of the outbreak of the Hermenigild accordance with Leander's known style, especi-
rebellion, he had been a monk, and then raised ally with that of the homily which con-
to the metropolitan see of Seville, perhaps at cludes the council and was avowedly written
that time the most important ecclesiastical and delivered by him. The homily (Homilia
post in Spain. The Catholics under the Arian Sancti Leandri in latidem ecclesiae ob conver-
king Leovigild had especial need of able and sionem gentis) is an eloquent and imaginative
faithful leaders. Probably Leander saw the piece of writing, with an undercurrent of re-
opportunity of the Catholics in Hermenigild's ference to the great semi-religious, semi-politi-
youth and the Catholicism of his wife Ingun- cal struggle which marked the reign of the
this, and this conjecture is warranted by the last Arian king. " The peace of Christ, then,"
evidence that the persuasive and eloquent says Leander, " has destroyed the wall of
bishop, who afterwards led the conversion discord which the devil had built up, and the
council, laid the first stone of his great work house which division was bringing to ruin is
in the conversion and rising of Hermenigild united in and established upon Christ the
against his Arian king and father Leovigild. corner-stone." Tejada y Ramiro, Colecc. de
Leovigild's Arian council of 581 was succeeded Can. de la Igl. Espanola, ii. 247-260 ; Gams,
by civil war between father and son in 582. Kirchengeschichte von Spanien, ii. (2), 6, 41 ;

Hermenigild had already endeavoured to Dahn, v. 159, vi. 434


; Helfferich, Entstehung
strengthen himself by alliances with the und Geschichte der W estgothen Recht, 33-46 ;

Catholic Suevi in the N. and the Catholic Hefele, iii. 44-49.


Byzantines in the S. and E. In connexion First Synod of Seville.— Eighteen months
with this last alliance we next hear of Leander after the conversion council, Leander, as.^
at Constantinople, " cum — te illuc injuncta metropolitan of Baetica, and in obedience to
pro causis fidei Visigothorum legatio per- the i8th canon of the council of 589, suin-
duxisset," says Gregory the Great, describing moned the bishops of Baetica to a provincial
in after-years (Pref. in Moralia, PcUr. Lat. synod in the cathedral of Seville, "in ecclesia
Ixxv. 510) his first friendship with Leander. Hispalensi Sancta Jerusalem " (cf. Florez, ix.
The exact date of this mission is unknown on the use of "Sancta Jerusalem"). The
(see Gorres, Zeitschrift fur historische Theologie, Acts, on matters disciplinary, are drawn up in
i. 1873, p. 103); but we incline to place it in the form of a letter to the absent bp. Pegasius
583, about the beginning of the siege of Seville, of Astigi (Ecija).
when effectual support from the empire might Correspondence with Gregory the Great. —
have given victory to Hermenigild. In 584 Gregory and Leander, first made friends at
Seville fell and Hermenigild was captured at Constantinople between 575 and 585, when
Cordova. Thenceforward Arianism was tri- Gregory was apocrisiarius of Pelagius II. at
umphant, and that persecution of the Catholics the East-Roman court. In May 591 Gregory,
by Leovigild, which is described by Isidore now pope, wrote a long letter to Leander (Ep.
(Hist. Goth. Esp. Sagr. vi. 491) and Gregory of lib. i. 43, apud Migne, Patr. Lat. Ixxvii. 497)
Tours (Hist. Franc, v. 39), was carried actively in answer to his old friend, who had congratu-
forward. In Apr. or May 586 occurred the lated him on his elevation, reported the Visi-
death of Leovigild and the accession of his gothic conversion and the third council of
second son Reccared ; and Leander, on re- Toledo, and inquired as to the form of bap-
ceiving information as to the state of affairs, tism to be thenceforward observed in Spain,
appears to have hurried home from Constan- whether by single or threefold immersion.
tinople. (Cf. what Lucinian says of his The pope expressed his joy in the conversion
" haste " on the journey homewards from of the Visigoths, declaring that Leander's
Constantinople, Ep. Licin. ad Greg. Pat. Esp. accounts of Reccared have made him love a
Sagr. V.) In Feb. 587 the preliminary man of whom he has no personal knowledge.
synod took place at Toledo, in which Reccared Let Leander look to it diligently that the
and his nobles abjured Arianism, and notice work so well begun may be perfected. In a
of the step was sent to the provinces. country where unity of faith had never been

The Conversion Council. In 589 a great questioned, single or threefold immersion
gathering at Toledo of the king and queen, the might be observed indifferently, as represent-
court, and 62 bishops, Arian and Catholic, ing either the Unity or the Trinity of the God-
changed the whole outer face of Visigothic head but as in Spain the Arian mode of bap-
;

history and entirely shifted its centre of tism had been by threefold immersion, it would
gravity. The causes which led to it had been be well henceforward to allow one immersion
long at work (cf. Dahn, Konige der Germanen, only, lest the heretics be supposed to have
v. on the political causes) ; but this third triumphed and confusion ensue. Finally, the
council of Toledo remains one of the most pope sent Leander certain codices; part of the
astonishing and interesting events in history. Homilies on Job, which he had asked for, were
For a detailed sketch of the proceedings see to follow, as the librarii had not been able to
Reccared. Here we are only concerned with finish the copy in time.
Leander's share in it. " Summa tamen Gregory's second letter, dated July 595, is
synodalis negotii," says the contemporary bp. a note accompanying the gift of the Regula
of Gerona, Joannes Biclarensis, "penes Sanc- Pastoralis with pts. i. and ii. of the Moralia.
tum Leandrum Hispal. ecclesiae episcopum —
The Pallium. In Aug. 599 Gregory wrote
et beatissimum Eutropium monasterii Ser- to Reccared, Claudius Dux of Lusitania, and
vitani abbatem fuit." This justifies us in Leander. The letter to Leander announces
attributing to Leander the main outline of the the gift of the pallium, to be worn at the
proceedings and the wording of a large propor- celebration of Mass, " solemnia Missarum."
tion of the Acts. Reccared's speeches are prob- To Reccared the pope writes: "To our honoured
LEANDER LEO I. 643

brother and fellow-bishop Leander we have Boll. March ii. 275 ;


Amador de los Rios, Hist.
sent the pallium as a gift from the see of the Espan. i. 312, 323 Montalem-
Coll. de la Lit. ;

blessed apostle Peter, which we owe to ancient Moines de I'Occident, ii.


bert, [m.a.w.]
custom {antiquae consuetudiru) to your de-
, Leo (1) I., emperor (surnamed the Great,
serts, and to his dignity and goodness," The the Thracian, and the Butcher), born c. 400
exact force of the gift of the pallium to Lean- in the country of the Bessi in Thrace, pro-
der has been much disputed. Florez (ix. 167) claimed emperor Feb. 7, 457, and crowned by
maintains it was nothing more than a mark of Anatolius, patriarch of Constantinople, being
honour and distinction, and did not carry the first Christian sovereign to receive his
with it the apostolic vicariate, which had, crown from the hands of a priest. Immedi-
however, been bestowed on his predecessors ately upon the news of Marcian's death,
in the see, Zeno and Sallustius, by popes religious troubles broke out in Alexandria,
Simplicius and Hormisdas (Tejada y Ramiro, where the Monophysite party murdered the
ii.962, 1015). In support of his supposition patriarch Proterius (Proteins), substituting
that pallium and vicariate were not necessarily for him Timothy Aelurus. The orthodox
combined, he quotes the case of bp. Auxanius bishops of Egypt fled to the emperor to make
of Aries, successor of St. Caesarius, to whom complaint. Anatolius, bp. of Constantinople,
pope Vigilius gave the pallium when the reported their sad case to pope Leo, who
vicariate had been previously bestowed energetically seconded their efforts for re-
(Vigil. Ep. vii. apud Migne, Pair. Lat. Ixix. 27). dress. The emperor, distracted by the
Gams, however, holds that in Gregory's mind demands of pope and patriarch on the one
at any rate the pallium carried with it the hand, of Aspar and the heretical party on the
vicariate, and that the phrase antiquae con- other, addressed a circular letter to Anatolius
suetudini is to be taken as referring to the and all other metropolitans, commanding
vicariates of Zeno and Sallustius, and as them to assemble their provincial councils,
implying the recognition by Gregory of an and advise him— (i) whether the decrees of
ancient claim on behalf of the see of Seville the council of Chalcedon should be held bind-
to represent the apostolic see in Spain. The ing (2) as to the ordination of Timothy
;

various other bestowals of the pallium on Aelurus. He also consulted the three most
Western bishops by Gregory, especially the celebrated ascetics of the time, Symeon Sty-
cases of Augustine of Canterbury [Ep. xi. 64, lites, James the Syrian, and Baradatus. We
65) and Syagrius of Autun (ix. 108), should possess in the Codex Encyclius the answers of
be studied in connexion with the case of all the bishops and hermits consulted, a most
Leander (cf. Walter, Lehrbuch des Kirchen- valuable monument of ecclesiastical anti-
rechts, pp. 308, 277, and Thomassin, Discipline quity. It was apparently composed by
de VEglise, ii. i. cc. 25, 26). Very soon after imperial order by some unknown Greek, trans-
the arrival of the pallium, at latest in 600, lated into Latin at the order of the senator
Leander died, shortly before the king, whose Cassiodorus by Epiphanius Scholasticus, and
constant friend and adviser he had been. first published in modern times by Laurentius

Works. The Libellus ad Florentinam con- Surius. It is in all collections of the councils,
but in full only in Labbe and Coss. Conctl. i. 4,
sists of an introductory letter and 21 chapters,
which constitute the Regula. The style is pp. 890-980 (cf. Cave, Scriptt. Lit. Hist. i. 495 ;
easy and flowing, rising at time to real pathos Tillem. Mem. xv. art. 167). The bishops, in
and sweetness, as in the beautiful concluding Aug. 458, replied, unanimously upholding the
chapter with its well-known reference to decrees of Chalcedon and rejecting the ordin-
Isidore. Its laudation of the celibate life and ation of Timothy, who, however, maintained
depreciation of marriage are quite in the taste his position at Alexandria till 460.
of the time, and, to judge from can. 5 of C. Tol. In 468 Leo sent an expedition under the
iii., seem to have been then in Spain a dis- command of Basiliscus, his brother-in-law,
tinguishing mark of the Catholic as opposed against the Arian Vandals of N. Africa, who
to the Arian clergy. were bitterly hostile to him on account of his
The Homily noticed above is the only other orthodoxy. Aspar and Ardaburius secretly
work of Leander now extant. Isidore, how- arranged with Basiliscus for its failure, as they
ever, in his Life of his brother (de Vir. III. feared any diminution of the great Arian
c. 41) speaks of three controversial treatises power. The emperor, having discovered the
against the Arians, composed by him during conspiracy, put Aspar and Ardaburius to
his exile from Spain under Leovigild. Isi- death, and banished Basiliscus a.d. 469. The
dore's description shews that they were Gothic guards, in revenge, raised a civil war
especially intended to meet the arguments and in Constantinople, under one Ostrys, a friend
expose the pretensions of the Arian council of of Aspar, and attacked the palace, but were
581. The last-named was probably in cate- defeated. Leo thereupon issued a severe edict
gorical answer to the libellus issued after the against the Arians and forbade them holding
synod by the Arian bishops and expressly meetings or possessing churches.
anathematized by the conversion council In another quarter controversy burst forth.
(Joh. Bid. ad an. 581 ; Tejada y Ramiro, ii. Gennadius, patriarch of Constantinople, dying
p. 224). in 471, was succeeded by Acacius, whom Leo
Authorities. —
Besides those already quoted, admitted a member of the senate, where no
ecclesiastic had hitherto sat. Acacius ob-
Baron. Ann. Eccl. a.d. 583, 584, 585, 589, 591,
595. 599 ; Nicolas Antonio, Bibl. Vet. ed. tained from Leo an edict confirming the 28th
Bayer, 1788, i. 290 de Castri Bibl. Espanola,
;
canon of Chalcedon, which raised Constanti-
ii.280 ; Aguirre, Coll. Max. Cone. Hisp. iii. nople to the same ecclesiastical level as Rome.
281-302 Fabric. Bibl. Lat. iv. 252, ed. 1754
; ;

You might also like